Ye Jingzhi asked with a bitter smile. Duanmu Xize didnt give an answer to his question for a moment, but the two of them knew what the answer would be.
Although Duanmu Xize should have trusted his advisor more than Mo Ruyue, he hade into contact with Mo Ruyue before. He knew that although she had a bad temper, she was not a brainless fool. Instead, she was extremely intelligent and sharp.
So when his advisor suddenly said that such a person was full of hostility and wariness, he really did not believe it.
Because there was no logical reason, and the abnormality of the matter was definitely a demon. Ye Jingzhis words were indeed not credible to Duanmu Xize at the time.
Alright, you can leave first. Ill get someone else to do this.
Duanmu Xize waved his hand and had Ye Jingzhi leave.
Now wasnt the time to pay attention to this. He had to figure out what Mo Ruyue was up to.
As for Ye Jingzhis matter, he would slowly investigate it in the future.
Soon, another person was called into the study by Duanmu Xize. Seeing Ye Jingzhi, who had always been the most trusted by the magistrate, leave just like that, many peoples eyes widened in surprise.
Even if he didnt hear anything with his own ears, Ye Jingzhi knew how many people would be whispering behind his back and how many people would be gloating at his misfortune while waiting to see him make a fool of himself.
From the first day he arrived at Master Duanmus residence, there were already people who disliked him and wanted to see the day he fell out of favor. Now, it seemed that they had waited for it.
How troublesome. Do I have to start again in a different ce? But I havent even started ying yet.
Ye Jingzhi mumbled to himself as he unhurriedly walked out of the main entrance.
Mo Ruyue was busy until noon. After a short break, it was time to see the soldiers families in the afternoon.
She had just sent thest soldier off when she saw a man rush in.
Lady Qin, Im one of Master Duanmus aides. My surname is Qiao. Im here on Master Duanmus orders to ask why you only took a cup of teas time to treat each soldier.
Im afraid you dont know that there have been bad rumors about you. They say that you are perfunctory and have no intention of doing good deeds. You just want to gain a good reputation by looking at the flowers.
You have to know that this matter was facilitated by the magistrate. If your reputation is ruined, you will also implicate the magistrate.
The man with the surname Qiao startedining and threw all the me to Mo Ruyue without caring for the reason.
Mr. Qiao, although I have only seen them for a short time, I have already screened out the soldiers who have health problems. If anyone has any objections, there are other doctors in the city who can confirm whether my diagnosis is useful or not.
Mo Ruyue had actually brought the soldiers into her space to do a full body examination.
In fact, the moment they entered the room, they were knocked out and didnt know where they had been. When they left the medium, Mo Ruyue removed the anesthetic effect.
The time it took to make a cup of tea was the time it took for the soldiers to wake up. When they woke up, they would only have the memory of Mo Ruyue checking their bodies.
This level of hypnotism was not difficult for Mo Ruyue. Although the physical fitness and will of soldiers were stronger than ordinary people, she also had a weapon that could enhance the amplitude of hypnosis.
After hearing what she said, the dissatisfaction on advisor Joes face did not decrease by much. Instead, he continued toin, Lady Qin, if you let other doctors verify your diagnosis, it would be better to let other doctors diagnose the soldiers.
Ive already given you a solution. If you dont listen, I dont have a better solution.
Mo Ruyue got up to go for lunch and rest. She didnt have much time to rest in the afternoon. She had to start early to treat the soldiers families and didnt have time to exin to this strange man.
Lady Qin, I was sent by the Lord to ask and solve the problem. Your attitude now ispletely irresponsible!
Advisor Qiaos words made Mo Ruyue stop in her tracks. The look she gave when she turned around was so cold that Advisor Qiao subconsciously took two steps back.
Mr. Qiao, Ill repeat myself. Theres nothing wrong with my diagnosis. If anyone has any objections to my diagnosis, what are the many doctors in Ping Cheng doing?
Now, Im going to rest. If you continue to chit-chat with me, dont me me for throwing you out.
Mo Ruyue felt very strange. Why was it that Duanmu Xize was such a shrewd person, but the aides around him were all of the best quality.
Not to mention the man surnamed Ye, who was emitting a dark aura, but this person surnamed Qiao in front of her was even more talkative and difficult to deal with than those gossiping women in the vige.
Perhaps he did have some brains, but at least for now, she couldnt tell.
In order to prevent herself from really throwing Advisor Qiao out, Mo Ruyue was extremely determined to leave this time,pletely ignoring the shouts behind him.
Mo Ruyues suggestion was obviously not adopted. As a result, by the afternoon, the public opinion had already fermented to an unimaginable degree.
What? the family members of those soldiers actually refused to let Lady Qin do a consultation?
When Duanmu Xize heard the news, he immediately mmed the table and stood up. It had only been a morning, how could the situation have taken a turn for the worse ande to this?
Chapter 253 - 253 Remedy
253 Remedy
Sir, Lady Qin is not willing to exin her actions and let the rumors spread. Thats why the soldiers families are disgusted with her and unanimously resist her.
Advisor Qiao didnt ry Mo Ruyues words. Instead, he exaggerated it andined to Duanmu Xize.
He felt that Lady Qin was irresponsible and arrogant. He really couldnt see what was worth for her to be so valued by the magistrate, even to help him n.
Although this seems like something she would do, it also depends on what it is. Lady Qin must have her reasons for doing this. Didnt she tell you what she thought?
Duanmu Xize asked again.
She
Advisor Qiao was stunned. He did not expect the magistrate to speak on behalf of Lady Qin. This meant that he had made a mistake in his judgment of the situation just now. It was obvious that the magistrate attached more importance to that woman than he had imagined.
Whats wrong? Did she say something?
Duanmu Xize could tell from his subordinates expression that something was wrong. His eyes immediately narrowed.
It seemed that he was too good to his subordinates. Each and every one of them had their own ns and actually dared to deceive him.
When Advisor Qiao saw Duanmu Xizes expression, he broke out in a cold sweat. He immediately knelt down and said, Your Excellency, when I went to ask that sister, Lady Qin, she only said that she had already screened out all the soldiers with physical problems. If anyone doubts it, the doctors in the medical center can do a follow-up examination to see if she is lying or misdiagnosed. The rumors will naturally be blown away.
I feel that her words are too arrogant, and at the same time, it is a repeated waste of medical resources. You have worked so hard to pave the way for her, but she responded so carelessly. It really does not match your good intentions!
Duanmu Xizes seven orifices were smoking when he heard this. He practically squeezed out the words from the gaps between his teeth and asked, You didnt follow Lady Qins suggestion just based on your judgment? Thats why you allowed the rumors to spread like this?
Advisor Qiao did not dare to reply, but even if he did not, the answer was right in front of him.
Idiot! How did I get such an idiot like you to be my advisor?
Duanmu Xize couldnt help but sweep all the papers and brushes off the table.
If this idiot hadnt acted on his own initiative and followed Mo Ruyues suggestion, things wouldnt have developed like this.
There was no doubt about Mo Ruyues medical skills. As long as she said that she had already screened out the sick soldiers, then there must be a problem with them. As long as the other doctors diagnosed them and confirmed that her words were correct, the unfavorable situation would be immediately reversed.
What did it mean for a doctor to be able to make a 100% urate diagnosis in such a short period of time? Even a fool would know the answer.
Duanmu Xize wanted to kill someone. This time, he didnt just want to create momentum for Mo Ruyue. More importantly, he wanted to add flowers to his reputation among the people.
But now, such a great opportunity had been destroyed by an Idiots self-righteousness!
Advisor Qiao knew that he had caused trouble and ruined the magistrates ns. He could not even beg for mercy now. He even fell to the ground and tried to curl up into a ball to reduce the chance of being noticed.
The magistrate was usually very easy to talk to, but once they failed their task, they had to pray that he was in a good mood that day and that the task they failed was not that important.
But now, it was clear that this good luck did not befall him.
What are you still kneeling here for? Arent you going to quickly remedy it ording to Lady Qins method?
Duanmu Xize nced at the curled-up figure on the ground from the corner of his eye and couldnt help but roar again.
Advisor Qiao was so shocked that he trembled. He quickly stood up and replied while retreating out. This subordinate will do it, will do it!
He stumbled out of the door, but when he turned around, he bumped into someone.
Sir, please calm down. I have already arranged for someone to take care of this matter. The soldiers who were previously selected are now being examined. They all have different degrees of illnesses, and none of them were misdiagnosed.
The person did not help Advisor Qiao up and instead allowed him to fall backward. At the same time, he reported to Duanmu Xize as if nothing had happened.
Good, as expected. We still have to depend on Mr. Ye at the critical moment.
Duanmu Xize nodded his head repeatedly and praised the man who had just walked in. The man who had walked in front of him and bowed was Ye Jingzhi, who had left and returned.
Sir, you tter me. This subordinate only went to make up for my mistake. This matter is not only rted to Lady Qins reputation, but also rted to Sirs painstaking efforts to love the people like your children. Naturally, it can not be regarded as childs y.
Ye Jingzhi humbly said, and conveniently delivered a ttering, yet he appeared so natural and without any sign of ttery.
s, if my men are as perceptive and dedicated as Mr. Ye, how much trouble can they help me save? Its a pity that those fools are just a burden, and I have to clean up their mess for them? Whats the use of having such trash!
Duanmu Xize cursed a few more words, but they were all for Ye Jingzhi to hear. He could consider it as him trying to ease Ye Jingzhis mind for the small gap between the two of them.
Ye Jingzhi only smiled and didnt respond to Duanmu Xizes words. He also didnt continue to be humble and appeared to be unaffected by the favor and humiliation.
Mr. Ye, its all thanks to you this time. Its also been hard on you. I wonder what other matters you have for me?
Although Duanmu Xize had praised Ye Jingzhi, he had long been wary of this person, so when he spoke to him, there was a faint sense of alienation.
Ye Jingzhi was such a smart person. How could he not understand the meaning behind Duanmu Xizes words? He had originally nned to leave and find another branch. However, after re-witnessing Mo Ruyues abilities, he suddenly changed his mind.
This womans ability was greater than he had imagined. If he had the opportunity to persuade her to cooperate with him, they would definitely be a good pair of partners.
It was difficult for a widow with five children to survive in this world. Even if she was capable, she still needed a man to rely on.
And he was the best choice.
However, the slightly troublesome thing now was that Mo Ruyue had a kind of vignce and disgust towards him for some unknown reason. This was not good for his n.
So what he had to do now was to make use of the opportunity created by Duanmu Xize to take the first step to get close to Mo Ruyue.
After learning that the family refused toe to her for a consultation, Mo Ruyue didnt seem to be in a hurry at all. Instead, she asked the medicine boy in the medical hall to bring her some tea and snacks.
I didnt have time to eat my fill at noon, but now I have the chance to make up for it.
She said in a self-deprecating manner as she ate the dessert.
Chapter 254 - 254 Blessing And Disaster
254 Blessing And Disaster
However, her leisure time didntst for long. After an hour, the medicine boy came to tell her that the family members waiting for a consultation outside had already formed a long line and hoped to receive Mo Ruyues diagnosis as soon as possible.
Oh? They changed their attitude so quickly. I thought it would take some effort.
Mo Ruyue said indifferently.
She knew that it was definitely not that advisor surnamed Qiao who did as she said. If not, someone had already predicted this situation and took the same measures as she suggested.
!!
It wasnt hard to think of this idea, but she somehow thought of that man with the surname Ye. Her intuition told her that this matter must have something to do with him.
However, even if he did it, so what? As long as things went ording to the n, that was good. It was just a little more vignt and thinking about what kind of tricks he would y or what purpose he wanted to achieve.
Since the man surnamed Ye had a purpose, he would not just do this little thing. What she needed to do now was to respond to changes by staying the same and wait to see what he would do.
Mo Ruyue soon began to examine the soldiers families. Their mental power was obviously not as strong as the soldiers. It was easier and faster to hypnotize them, and they could also be examined faster.
However, Mo Ruyue still chose to go at the same speed as she did when she examined the soldiers. This way, it would not be easy for others to notice anything amiss.
By the end of the evening, 20 sick soldiers and 40 family members had been selected. One of them was the family member of the squad leadersrade.
When Mo Ruyue was examining that person, she sighed. No wonder that small squad leader would ask her for help.
This patient was really unlucky. She had countless illnesses, big and small, and there was almost no good ce for her to get sick. At the same time, Mo Ruyue was very surprised. She had so many illnesses, but she could still hold on for so many years. How did she manage to hold on?
Although she was surprised, it was not a problem for her to cure this patient. Whether it was pure chinese medicine and acupuncture treatment, or the ultra-modern medical equipment in the space medical room, there would always be one or more diseases that were suitable for her.
She would definitely get the blood she needed before, it was just a matter of time.
Mo Ruyue was sorting out the medical records of the 60 patients selected today when she saw a medicine boy walk in and say to her, Lady Qin, the magistrate hase.
As soon as he finished speaking, Duanmu Xize had already stepped in.
Lady Qin, this official came uninvited, I hope you dont mind.
He seemed to be apologizing to Mo Ruyue, but in fact, there was no apology in his words at all.
I thought Master Duanmu woulde to inspect during the day, but its alreadyte. Even if Master Duanmu came, Im afraid no one would see him.
Mo Ruyue was very clear that Duanmu Xize did not do this just for her. If this matter was handled well, he would also win the reputation of loving the people like his own children. When that time came, the benefits he would receive would only be more than hers.
Lady Qin must be joking. If I didnt wait for you to finish examining this group of people today, how could this official understand the most detailed situation first-hand?
Duanmu Xize did not seem to understand the meaning behind Mo Ruyues words. The smile on his face did not diminish, and he spoke as if it was really the case.
Alright, then what does Master Duanmu want to know about? For example, what kind of illness did everyone suffer from, what kind of treatment arrangements were made, or something else?
Mo Ruyue changed the topic at the right time. After all, the two of them hadmon interests now, so it was better not to make their rtionship so stiff.
How do you n to arrange these patients? Do you want to do it or
Duanmu Xize cooperated and asked.
ording to his thoughts, it would be best for these people to ept Mo Ruyues treatment. The greater her contributions and the more dazzling her achievements were, the more beneficial it would be for him.
Ill choose the most serious ones to treat. As for the rest, Ill leave them to the doctors in the city. After all, I cant take all the credit. Besides, Im too busy.
Mo Ruyue would not be so foolish as to take care of all the patients. Even if she had the ability, she would never do that.
If she really did that, she wouldnt be able to go home for a long time. Besides, it was a taboo to take all the credit.
Its rare for Lady Qin to have such a heart. If those doctors know about this, they should be grateful to you.
Duanmu Xize smiled slightly, as if he had agreed to Mo Ruyues suggestion.
Although things didnt go ording to his expectations. At least it didnt go too far. Even if she could cure all the serious diseases, it was enough to prove that she was a divine doctor. It would even prove that her medical skills were not specialized in one or several fields, but all-rounded.
Mo Ruyue worked through the night toe up with a distribution table. She divided the patients ording to the diseases that the doctors in each medical hall were good at treating. Out of the sixty patients, ten of them were personally handled by Mo Ruyue, while the rest were treated by different doctors from the other five medical halls.
In the next two days, Mo Ruyue continued to see patients at the same speed as before. This time, all the rumors had disappeared as quickly as they had appeared.
This time, the rumors circting in Ping City were all about Mo Ruyues incredible medical skills, from her speed of consultation to the two unheard-of major operations in the county.
The citizens of Ping City had seen the former with their own eyes, while Duanmu Xize had secretly sent people to spread thetter. After all, it was the truth. Even if there was no need to exaggerate, it was enough to shock the world.
Two days passed in the blink of an eye. No matter how strict Mo Ruyues screening and treatment standards were, she still had to treat 30 patients herself.
It was an increase of almost ten patients a day, butpared to the number of patients distributed to other medical centers, it was already a lot less.
The official treatment had already begun on the second night. The patients who had been selected on the first day had been assigned to various medical centers ording to the distribution table.
The medical hall that Mo Ruyue was in had also opened up a special treatment area, and the patients she received were arranged ording to the type of illness.
Everything was ready, and they were just waiting for Mo Ruyue to make a move.
This batch of thirty patients had all kinds of diseases. It was not easy for Mo Ruyue to gather a few more for collective treatment. This made her sigh. She could really encounter anything.
If this batch of patients were cured, it would prove that she had super medical skills in all fields. However, there was another problem. If there was a need for an open skull or organ transnt surgery, how would she deal with it?
Even if she had a medical space, it was impossible for her to bring it to the outside world, let alone exin the matching of organs and other problems.
There was a saying that was right, fortune was where disaster was. Now, it was really hard to say whether this matter would bring her a blessing or a curse.
Chapter 255 - 255 Order Of Commendation
255 Order Of Commendation
In order to save as much time as possible, Mo Ruyue adopted a centralized treatment method for patients with lighter symptoms. It was said that the treatment process of Traditional Chinese Medicine was slow, but in reality, they had not found the right method and prescription.
Mo Ruyues library was all-epassing, especially in the field of medical books. There were many ancient recipes that she had never heard of before, but since they could be recorded in the spatial library, they must be extremely effective. She had also personally verified this point.
In fact, in the process of consultation in Huichun Hall, they could encounter many cases mentioned in ancient medical books. The prescriptions used by Mo Ruyue after his own verification and adjustment could have miraculous effects.
Out of the thirty patients, seven or eight of them received extremely obvious results on the first day of treatment. This made everyone even more convinced of mo ruhans ability. Only the legendary divine doctor could cure the illness with the medicine and have immediate results.
!!
On the sixth night of Mo Ruyues stay in Ping City, the squad leader secretly brought his promisedrades to the backyard of the medical hall.
Lady Qin, lets fulfill our promise.
As he spoke, he looked at hisrades behind him and said to Mo Ruyue with an ashamed expression, In fact, the reason we coulde here is that the magistrate knows. Without his permission, we cant even leave the camp.
Back then, when I made the promise to you, I also thought that we coulde out during our shift. However, you dont live in Ping City and our shift schedule is different. Im afraid that it will take a long time to fulfill the promise.
Lady Qin, Im really sorry. If we didnt say this, Im afraid we wouldnt have been able to invite you over.
The squad leader finally told Mo Ruyue the truth, but he didnt seem surprised at all when he saw her expression.
Youre in the military camp, and youre bound by military discipline. You cant do whatever you want. So, when you proposed this exchange, I knew you wouldnt be able to fulfill it.
Mo Ruyue said coldly.
Then why did Lady Qin agree toe and treat our brothers and rtives?
The captain asked in surprise.
If he knew that he was being deceived, even if he didnt give the other party a good scolding, he would have left in a huff, let alone continue to pretend that he didnt know anything and continue to be deceived.
Because I will naturally have a way to get what I want. Arent you guys already here?
Mo Ruyue felt that she didnt need to exin the twists and turns to the team leader. In fact, ording to the level of attention Duanmu Xize paid to her, those private transactions couldnt escape his eyes at all.
Thus, when Mo Ruyue made her request, she mentioned this in passing. Duanmu Xize agreed very quickly without even asking for the reason.
Im sorry, Lady Qin. We really didnt mean to lie to you. We really dont have the face to see you now.
The squad leader said guiltily again. No matter what, he had lied to Mo Ruyue out of selfishness. If he could appease her anger, not only would he be willing to be beaten and punished, but he would also have noints even if he was made to work like a horse or a cow.
Forget it. Its useless to apologize now. Youre already here, so lets start.
If Mo Ruyue did not want to think about it, it would be a waste of time. She just wanted to quickly finish drawing blood so that she could continue to treat other patients.
The team leader was also helpless. It seemed that he had left apletely bad impression on Lady Qin, but he didnt know if he would have the chance to fix it in the future.
It took almost two hours for her to draw the blood of all the soldiers who had arrived. As she could not use modern blood drawing tools, she still used the old artificial blood drawing tools that she had made, which led to a low efficiency.
Before this time tomorrow night, the needle holes on your arms cante into contact with water. Eat more meat and eggs. Tomorrows training can be reduced appropriately. You can return to normal in a day or two.
Mo Ruyue reminded them as she didst time. Some of them had experience in drawing blood, while the rest were doing it for the first time. But no matter what, she still had to tell them what they needed to know.
Lady Qin, dont worry, I will take care of them.
After the squad leader said that, he left with his team, just like how they had quietly arrived.
The subsequent treatment process was unusually smooth, and there were no idents. All the patients who had been treated by Mo Ruyue were quickly cured and discharged. Hence, some patients who were still in other clinics made requests, hoping to receive Mo Ruyues treatment.
When this news reached Mo Ruyues ears, she directly rejected it.
When a patient is assigned to a doctor, unless the doctor really cant cure him, theres no way to change the treatment. Its just that the treatment process isnt as fast. How can I take over someone elses patient?
This was how Mo Ruyue responded to those who came to deliver the news. Even if the magistrate ordered her to do so, she would not do it.
On the one hand, it would cause more trouble for him and increase his workload. On the other hand, he would have vited a taboo in the industry.
Although Mo Ruyue was not a person bound by etiquette, she still followed the rules.
This, Lady Qin, this is just a matter of convenience. Besides, isnt it more beneficial for you if all the patients recover faster?
The person tried to persuade Mo Ruyue. Compared to Advisor Qiaos arrogance, he was more cautious and patient.
Ive already done everything that Im required to do. Everything else is someone elses task, not mine. So, instead of persuading me to cure all the patients, its better to persuade those people to ept treatment with peace of mind.
Mo Ruyue shook her head,pletely unmoved.
Those peoples illnesses were very mild, much lighter than the patients she had received. As for the speed of recovery, it would be slower. She could only find the reason from those doctors.
Although all the selected patients had not fully recovered, the people who were treated by Mo Ruyue had basically recovered. The rest was only a matter of time.
After another week, Duanmu Xizes report to the imperial court came to an end.
Lady Qin, now the whole world knows about your title as a divine doctor. Even the imperial court has issued an order ofmendation. Tomorrow, I will present the reward to you in the government office. Of course, all the state and county officials under my jurisdiction wille to witness this scene.
After all, your glory is also our prefectures glory. There will be a grand celebration banquetter. This should be enough for you to intimidate some people, right?
Duanmu Xize looked at Mo Ruyue and handed her the order ofmendation in advance.
This was to be read out in public the next day. After that, Mo Ruyue had to mount it and offer it up. After all, it was given by the imperial court. Even if it was slightly defaced, it would be a great disrespect and would be punished.
This disy is indeed a little unexpected, but the effect should be pretty good.
Mo Ruyue didnt take the order ofmendation. She just looked at the piece of paper and shook her head.
In order to get this piece of paper, she had worked hard for more than ten days. Did this honore so easily? Not at all.
Chapter 256 - 256 Selfless Dedication
256 Selfless Dedication
However, her harvest this time was not small. The most important thing was that she got blood and ore. One could save her life, and the other could be used to make life-saving tools.
Seeing that she did not ept it, Duanmu Xize did not force her. He carefully put the order ofmendation away. As long as this thing was in his hands, if anything happened, he would still be the one to bear the responsibility.
From this, it could be seen that Mo Ruyue was an extremely cautious person and seemed to be very clear about the rules of the game.
However, she was just amoner, how would she know about this?
A question shed across Duanmu Xizes mind. He felt that Lady Qin was more and more mysterious.
Master Duanmu, if theres nothing else, Ill be taking my leave.
After looking at the order ofmendation, Mo Ruyue took her leave. Although she and Duanmu Xize were temporarily on the same boat, his utilitarian and purposeful nature was too strong. The two of them could not be on the same road for a long time, so she always kept a distance.
Alright, then Ill see you at the celebration party tomorrow.
Duanmu Xize was rather happy, but after Mo Ruyue left, his face immediately darkened. His eyes coldly stared in the direction she left in, not saying a word.
My Lord, youve seen it for yourself. This womans wariness is very strong. Shes definitely not someone who can be easily subdued.
A man came out from behind the screen. It was Ye Jingzhi.
He slowly walked to Danmu Xizes side and spoke his mind.
Its impossible to conquer a woman like her with force. Youve done your research. This woman can fight a giant tiger alone and knows all kinds of mechanical skills. Even her five babies are learning martial arts. Shes naturally not weak.
In terms of intelligence, she has such superb medical skills and mechanical skills, so her stratagems and wisdom are definitely not low. So, general strategies are ineffective against her. Sir, do you think that when you meet such a woman, you can conquer her?
Ye Jingzhi said with a smile.
His appearance was refined and handsome, especially when he smiled. It made people feel like they were bathing in the spring breeze. However, when he said those words, a hint of madness would asionally sh in his eyes. However, it was cleverly hidden under the respect and ttery he showed Duanmu Xize.
Duanmu Xizes gaze was fixed on the study rooms door, as if just looking at it would make Mo Ruyue look back at him. As for Ye Jingzhis words, it was as if he didnt say anything.
He was not a fool. If he could not analyze these things and could only rely on his aides, he would have died many times in the officialdom.
Ye Jingzhi was already used to Duanmu Xizes behavior. It was as if the advisor was only there for show. He had always been self-righteous and made all his judgments and decisions. Being able to live until now was already a skill.
Forget it. in any case, he was only using Duanmu Xize as a stepping stone. A mere prefect was far from the end of his ambitions.
The next morning, the entrance of thergest medical center in Ping City was already crowded with people.
Themoners in the city had already seen the announcement that Divine Doctor Qin would be publiclymended and rewarded at the magistrates office today. Furthermore, the imperial court would personally issue an order ofmendation tomend Divine Doctor Qin for her contributions to the soldiers and his family members.
Although everyone had heard of Divine Doctor Qin and many had seen her before, she was only a mysterious image that was passed down by word of mouth to themoners of Ping City. Everyone had different opinions about her. However, her mysterious image would be unveiled today.
Mo Ruyue had juste out of the Medical Hall. When she saw the mass of people in front of her, she didnt even move an eyebrow.
Back when she was in the county towns Huichun Hall, she had been surrounded by people countless times. Now that she was in Ping City, it was just that there were more people surrounding her. To her, it did not make a difference.
Although Mo Ruyue appeared very calm, when the surroundingmoners saw her, they all let out a cry of disappointment.
She was wearing a curtained hat. The long veil hung down and covered most of her body, but one could still see that she was wearing mens clothes.
What? I woke up early in the morning to see what this Lady Qin looks like. Wasnt she supposed to be a cold beauty? How do you look at it covered up like this!
Who asked you not to be one of those soldiers or their family members? They can see it, but you dont have the good fortune to see it.
Its not like you cant be seen. Why do you have to cover your face? So many people have seen it. Is there still a need to do this?
Its her face. If she wants to cover it, she will cover it. Its none of your business. Who said she had to show it to you?
Alright, stop arguing. If you have the ability, go and take off her hat. Whats the use of talking here?
Duanmu Xize had not expected that Mo Ruyue would cause such a huge discussion just by showing her face. However, this also showed that Mo Ruyue was already an influential figure and not the silent divine doctor from before.
He listened to the news reported by his subordinate and watched Mo Ruyue enter the government office and walk towards him step by step. Suddenly, he felt that this woman seemed to have a halo around her body, causing her entire body to be shrouded in a faint halo. For a moment, she was so dazzling that he couldnt look at her directly.
As expected of the woman that Ive taken a fancy to. No wonder she wants to use my power to intimidate some people. But can she protect herself until the end?
Duanmu Xize muttered, the interest in his eyes growing.
The people of Ping City were very familiar with their own magistrate. In their eyes, he could be described with two words. One was approachable and the other was loving the people like their own children.
Of all the officials in Ping City, the one with the best reputation was undoubtedly the magistrate.
When Duanmu Xize saw that Mo Ruyue had arrived, he immediately stood up from behind the table and came over to wee her.
Lady Qin, youre here. Come, follow me to the door of the yamen. After I read out the order ofmendation, you can receive your thanks.
He walked forward and reached out to grab Mo Ruyues hand, but she dodged it by turning her body slightly.
Duanmu Xizes expression did not change. He only retracted his hand very naturally and waved to his side. An aide beside him immediately carried a tray covered with a red cloth over.
Please, my lord.
Mo Ruyue stepped aside to let Duanmu Xize walk in front. Her attitude wasnt very respectful, but it was clearly much better than her previous attitude.
The two of them appeared in front of the citizens of Ping City, one after the other. The originally buzzing of discussion suddenly turned into a mor.
Everyone, quiet down!
Duanmu Xize raised his hands slightly and quickly suppressed the sound of the drums.
Everyone should know that the one standing beside me now is Lady Qin, who has made great contributions to the soldiers and their families guarding the city. It is her selfless contribution that can exchange for everyones health.
I have already reported this matter to the imperial court, and the order ofmendation was already issued a few days ago. That is to say, Lady Qin could have received themendation a few days ago and retired.
Chapter 257 - 257 Can’t Refuse
257 Cant Refuse
But she didnt do that. Instead, she took the initiative to wait until all the patients had recovered before she epted the award. What kind of selfless and responsible spirit is this? Its a blessing for the people of Ping City to be able to invite her!
And now the final results havee out. All the patients who received Lady Qins treatment have been cured without exception. It can be seen that her medical skills are high. She is indeed worthy of the reputation of a Divine Doctor. It is not an exaggeration to say that she is the reincarnation of the medical saint.
Duanmu Xizes mouth was full of beautiful words, praising Mo Ruyue to the skies. His goal was very simple. He wanted to carry out her good reputation to the end and push her prestige to the highest point.
He had a good reputation among the people, and with his inspiring speech, he quickly stirred up everyones emotions.
Everyone looked at Mo Ruyue with fanatical eyes as if they were looking at a bodhisattva who had descended to the mortal world. With her life, they would have a guarantee.
Mo Ruyues brows furrowed slightly. She suddenly had a feeling that Duanmu Xize was walking on the edge of danger. Not only did he want to boost her reputation, but he also wanted to create a God.
When Duanmu Xize spoke, he kept ncing at Mo Ruyue from the corner of his eye. Naturally, he didnt miss the micro-expressions on her face. At the same time, he was secretly pleased with himself.
This move of acting first and reportingter was to make Mo Ruyue unable to refuse.
She could either ept it, or she would have to stand on his side in the future, and even if she was unwilling, she would have to be used by him.
She could either refuse and admit in public that her medical skills were fake and not as magical as the legends made them out to be. This would prevent the people from bing her fanatical believers and bing a problem that she would never be able to solve.
Once Mo Ruyue chose thetter, the power she wanted to borrow would be gone. In other words, she would get nothing other than ten days of hard work in vain. She might even offend him and provoke a powerful enemy.
This was not Ye Jingzhis idea, but his own decision.
Ye Jingzhis idea was to be slow, to be gentle, and to attack the heart, but he couldnt wait any longer.
At the beginning of spring next year, the imperial court would hold an examination for officials once every three years. Although Duanmu Xizes reputation among themon people was excellent, he was still not satisfied.
If he could make good use of Mo Ruyue, he would not only be able to please themon people, but also those who needed him to look up to.
Mo Ruyue knew that Duanmu Xize was secretly observing her reaction. However, no matter what he was expecting, he was probably going to be disappointed.
She didnt rush to refute or confess anything. She would wait until she got the order ofmendation. After all, that thing was the most practical.
Duanmu Xize saw that Mo Ruyue didnt have any reaction and thought that she had already epted her fate. He was secretly pleased with himself. As expected, his method was the fastest and most effective. That Ye Jingzhi always acted like he was profound and unfathomable, but in reality, his standard was only so-so.
He was relieved. After boasting, he invited the order ofmendation out.
Mo Ruyue, who had been standing behind him, immediately turned to him. Because this was only an order ofmendation and not an imperial edict, she did not need to kneel to listen. However, Mo Ruyue was dressed as a man, so he still had to bow and listen.
Duanmu Xize quickly read through the order ofmendation once, then held a piece of paper in his hand and said, Lady Qin, this is the courts recognition and high regard for you. I hope that you can continue to benefit the people with your benevolence and heart.
As he spoke, he handed over the order ofmendation again.
This time, Mo Ruyue put her hands over her head and solemnly took the piece of paper.
Although it was just a piece of paper, the honor and responsibility it carried were heavy. Of course, the benefits it could bring her were equally heavy.
Many thanks to Master Duanmu for giving thismoner this opportunity. Thismoner has only done a little bit of effort. The sea of knowledge is vast, and the path of medical skills is endless. I dont dare to be called a divine doctor, so please dont tter me.
After Mo Ruyue received the order ofmendation, she also said a few words. However, when the people heard her, they thought that she was just being polite and did not treat these words as her true feelings at all.
She also knew that the people were in a frenzy now. Even if they saw with their own eyes that she had killed someone, they would probably take the initiative to find a reason to exonerate her.
However, there was still room for maniption. Of course, Mo Ruyue wouldnt destroy her reputation, but she also wouldnt let such a thing happen.
Duanmu Xize thought that he was using this method to firmly tie her together, but he did not know that it was not a good thing to be extravagant. Once someone got hold of something that could be used against him, it would immediately lead to a disaster.
She had thought that he was a smart person, but she did not expect him to be so short-sighted and stupid.
Mo Ruyue thought disdainfully in his heart. At the same time, he also felt very strange.
Since someone like Ye Jingzhi was by Duanmu Xizes side, why would he give him such an idea? Could it be that Ye Jingzhi was actually not favored by the magistrate?
This was interesting.
After the award ceremony, Mo Ruyue brought the order ofmendation back to where she was staying.
Just now, she had seen that familiar face among the many officials, but the situation at the time did not allow her to look carefully. But she could imagine that his expression must have been very wonderful.
Soon, it was time for the banquet. She could not attend such a formal banquet in mens clothes, but Mo Ruyue did not know how tob her hair like those ancient women, let alone bring any suitable clothes or jewelry to match it.
Fortunately, Qing Xi had sent someone over at the crucial moment. It was Madam Du, who had dealt with Mo Ruyue before. Not only did she know how tob all kinds of hair styles, but she had also brought a few sets of clothes and jewelry for Mo Ruyue to choose from.
Mo Ruyue was used to wearing ck and white clothes, but white was not resistant to dirt. When she entered the forest, her clothes would not look good, soter on, she changed to wearing sky blue or gray.
Qing Xi seemed to have seen through her fashion taste. The clothes she brought were not the kind that dazzled peoples eyes. there were sky green, light gray, and camel colors inside.
Mo Ruyues hand naturally reached for the light gray but saw that Madam Du was frowning slightly.
Is it not appropriate?
It was rare for her to take the initiative to ask for advice.
Lady Qin, although we women should dress solemnly and steadily, but tonights banquet is for you. If you choose to attend in such clothes, it would seem a bit dull.
In my opinion, the azure one is better. Your skin is cold and white, and this color suits you the best. Its bright and doesnt look dull, and its not too festive or bright, so its perfect for you.
On the other hand, Madam Du was very serious in giving Mo Ruyue her advice.
Then Ill take this.
Mo Ruyue took the sky-blue clothes andpared them to his body. The effect on the upper body was not bad.
Qing Xi was, after all, the daughter of a wealthy family. Her taste was indeed very good. The things she picked were elegant and not vulgar. They had both ss and taste, which saved her a lot of trouble.
Because Mo Ruyue was the widow of the original owner, she still had tob her hair into a womans bun, even though she was still a virgin.
Chapter 258 - 258 Good People Don’t Come
258 Good People Dont Come
She usually dressed as a man and tied her hair into a high ponytail. Now that she had changed into womens clothing, she was really cold, refined, and unparalleled. Even an old servant from a mansion like Madam Du, who was used to seeing beautiful women, was dazed by her.
Madam Du, are you done?
Although Mo Ruyue was used to all kinds of looks, she saw that it was gettingte and she didnt want to bete.
Oh, oh, sorry. This old servant has lost herposure.
!!
Only then did Madam Due back to her senses and repeatedly apologized to Mo Ruyue. Then, she couldnt help but praise, Lady Qin, we all know that you are born with good looks, but we didnt expect you to be so good. Look, when you dress up, you really make people unable to take their eyes off you!
Mo Ruyue smiled faintly and didnt give her any response.
No matter how beautiful they were, they were just skin and bones. In the world of assassins, no one would spare their lives just because they were handsome or beautiful.
After packing up, Mo Ruyue got into the carriage waiting at the door and went straight to the venue of the banquet tonight C Duanmu mansion.
Although this was not her first time in Ping City, it was her first time at the Duanmu residence. Although it was nighttime and she could not get a full view of the Duanmu residence, it was not difficult to imagine the size of the residence just by looking at the two ck gates and the two ferocious stone beasts at the bottom of the steps.
Mo Ruyue had also nced at the so-called puppet shows in her spare time. Although she had no feelings for the characters in them, she still had some impression of the mansions of the princes and ministers. They were not much different from what she was seeing now, except for the size of the door.
There were already many horse carriages parked at the entrance. The people entering the Duanmu residence were all officials and their families who had been invited. As they watched the endless stream of people enter the residence, the sound of silk and bamboo music could be heard from the courtyard, making it seem very lively.
Mo Ruyue was sitting in the Duanmu familys carriage. The moment she appeared, she attracted many gazes. When she got off the carriage and stood in front of the crowd, the originally noisy crowd suddenly quieted down.
Is it Lady Qin? Aiya, Im sorry for not weing you!
Duanmu Xize had already received the news when Mo Ruyue set off. He had also specially waited for her to get off the car and go out to wee her. In the end, when he walked out of the main gate, he was instantly stunned.
At the bottom of the steps outside the mansion stood a beautiful woman with a cold and elegant look. She had a cloud of ck hair, smooth skin, and eyes as bright as the cold stars and moon in the sky. She was wearing a sky-blue long dress that made her tall and exquisite figure look particrly graceful.
He had always known that Mo Ruyue was a beauty, but he had only seen her valiant side in mens clothing. It was only today that he knew how amazing this woman was.
However, Duanmu Xizes self-control wasnt bad. He only lost his focus for a moment before he immediately regained his consciousness.
Master Duanmu,
Mo Ruyue slightly bent her knees in greeting to Duanmu Xize. The extent of her movements was almost invisible, and it was just a gesture.
No need for gifts. Come, Lady Qin, follow this official in. The banquet is about to begin.
The fact that he had personallye out to wee them was already giving Mo Ruyue a great deal of face. As for the other officials families, they could only look forward to it. It was already not bad to be able to get a hint of Master Duanmus approval. No one dared to dream of being weed in person.
There was another person who was dumbfounded, and that was the county magistrate, Chen Luyu.
Not only was he once again stunned by Mo Ruyue, but he also felt his heart turn cold after seeing the look in Magistrate Xizes eyes.
He was very familiar with the look in the magistrates eyes. He, Chen Luyu, had also seen that look before. It was the look of someone who wanted to get this woman by hook or by crook, at all costs.
It was precisely because of this gaze and the various ostentatious arrangements that the magistrate had made that Chen Luyu clearly realized that he had no chance at all.
Even if he ate a bears heart and a leopards gall, he would not dare to snatch the magistrates woman!
For the rest of the night, Chen Luyu was in a daze. All the delicacies tasted like wax in his mouth, and he couldnt even taste anything.
Perhaps it was because he had a guilty conscience, but he always felt that the magistrates eyes were cold and full of warning.
Could it be that Lady Qin had said something to the magistrate and told him about all the offenses he had done to her in the past? That was why she was awarded by the imperial court in public and had invited guests to celebrate.
So, was this a warning to him?
The more Chen Luyu thought about it, the more frightened he became. The chair under his butt seemed to have grown nails, making him unable to sit still for a moment. The back of his clothes was already soaked with cold sweat.
Mo Ruyue had endured this banquet with patience.
Everyones eyes were focused on her. They were like searchlights, scanning her over and over again.
Her five senses were extremely sharp. Even if someone was whispering to her from far away, it was as if they were shouting in her ear.
Whether it was men or women, they were all gossiping about her. Some men were even more shameless than women when it came to gossiping.
Mo Ruyues mind was filled with all kinds of voices, and her face was stiff the entire night.
If it was any other asion, she might be able to just leave, but not now.
Duanmu Xize had caused so much trouble just to create momentum for her and to borrow each others power. If she were to just leave like that, the only ones who would suffer would be the magistrates face and her interests.
Mo Ruyue would never do anything that would not benefit her, so she had to restrain herself.
The good news was that the banquet was finallying to an end, but the bad news was that she had to continue to endure it before it ended.
Lady Qin, your medical skills are so brilliant, to be able to get the imperial courts award, it really makes people envious.
A well-dressed woman walked over with a ss of wine in her hand and tried to strike up a conversation with Mo Ruyue. There were too many people who came to talk to her that night, but she only responded with a few short sentences.
She only nodded to this woman. Even if someone scolded her behind her back for being arrogant because she had connections with the magistrate, as long as it was not said in front of her, she would pretend not to hear it.
When an ordinary person saw that the magistrate thought so highly of her, they would just smile and find a random reason to leave even though they had been rebuffed. However, this woman had been standing in front of Mo Ruyue with a cup in her hand and looking at her with a fake smile.
It seemed that the good did note!
Mo Ruyue nced at her. She didnt know where this woman came from. She should be the family of some official, or at least not Duanmu Xizes wife, because that woman was sitting on the main seat of the womens side and was prepared to watch the show with a smile.
Lady Qin, I sincerely want to give you a toast, I dont know if you would do me the honor?
That woman saw that Mo Ruyue was only looking at her without saying anything and thought that she was afraid of her identity. She felt a little smug.
In the end, she was just amoner, how could she be on equal footing with her, the officials wife?
Chapter 259 - 259 Drunk
259 Drunk
Even if she had the favor of the magistrate, how long could itst?
Mo Ruyue saw the pride and confidence on her face. She raised her eyebrows and said indifferently, I dont drink.
As soon as she finished speaking, a soft sneer came from beside her. That was not what she had said when the magistrate and some officials had toasted her that night.
The womans face instantly darkened. She stared at Mo Ruyue unkindly and said, Lady Qin wasnt like this when she was drinking at night. Do you not want to drink, or do you not want to give me the face to drink with me?
!!
Since you already know that Ive drunk, you should know that I cant hold my liquor anymore. The magistrate has allowed me to stop drinking, but you still want me to do you a favor and drink your wine. Are you not taking my alcohol tolerance seriously, or are you not taking the words of the magistrate seriously?
Mo Ruyue retorted unhurriedly.
The woman was stunned and didnt know how to reply to her. She hesitated for a moment before saying, Lady Qin was at the male guests side just now, how could we, the people at the female side, hear the words of the magistrate.
Moreover, when Lady Qin returned, she did not inform Lady Duanmu. This seems to be against the rules.
She had already regained herposure after saying her first sentence. She looked much more confident, especially after seeing Lady Duanmus expression. She felt that she had found a way to deal with Mo Ruyue.
Im afraid thats just what you think. Ive already greeted Lady Duanmu before the banquet started and even drank with her. What are your intentions in pushing Lady Duanmu out to talk about this now?
Mo Ruyue still spoke unhurriedly, but her words were sharp. It was obvious that she no longer intended to use a defensive posture and had begun to take the initiative to attack.
She had endured for an entire night and no longer had the patience to endure it. Since someone had already delivered themselves to her door to ask her to leave early, why not go with the flow and give up this opportunity to offend the magistrate?
What do you mean by that?
As expected, that woman couldnt stand being provoked. When she heard this, her expression became even uglier. After questioning Mo Ruyue, she immediately turned to Lady Duanmu and said, Madam, I absolutely didnt have the intention to offend Madam. I hope that Madam wont be incited by this Lady Qin.
Idiot.
Mo Ruyue said in her heart.
This sentence had really pushed Lady Duanmu into a situation where she had no choice but to stand up and speak. Such a stupid person could actually sit in the position of the officials wife for so long. One had to say that her dog-shit luck had reallysted for a long time.
Sure enough, the calm expression on Lady Duanmus face disappeared. A trace of disgust shed across her eyes, but it soon returned to a smile.
What are you saying? Lady Qin was only speaking the truth, how did it be a provocation? Mrs. Cen, dont tell me youre drunk just because you drank a few more sses.
Yes, yes, yes. I did drink a little too much. The wind just now made my head feel a little dizzy. Im afraid Im really drunk.
Madam Cen immediately changed her words after getting a way out.
Since youre drunk, then go back early and rest. Why dont you take a rest in my residences side room?
Lady Duanmu enthusiastically asked again.
No, no, no. Id better go back and rest. I wont trouble Lady Duanmu.
Madam Cens arrogance was immediately gone. She could afford to offend Mo Ruyue, but she couldnt afford to offend Lady Duanmu. At this time, she could only hope to quickly settle the matter and not cause any trouble. She didnt dare to continue pestering.
But it seems to me that you still want to toast Lady Qin. The wine in my Duanmu residence is so good that you cant help but want to share it with Lady Qin.
Lady Duanmus next sentence brought the topic back to the conflict just now. However, her status was much higher than that of Madam Cen, and no one could find any fault with the reason she came up with.
Lady Duanmu, I, I just admire Lady Qins ability, so I want to be closer to her. I have no other intentions. Just now, Lady Qin also said that she cant hold her liquor anymore, so if I toast again, its a bit presumptuous.
Madam Cen had no choice but to p herself in the face. Then, as if she was afraid that Lady Duanmu would make a fuss out of this matter again, she immediately said to Mo Ruyue, Lady Qin, Im sorry, I cant drink too much, so Ill take my leave first.
Madam, the adults have sent this small one to ask. The womenfolk here are so lively, did something interesting happen?
A manservants voice suddenly came from outside the reception pavilion. It turned out that the female guests movements had reached the male guests and attracted Duanmu Xizes attention. Thus, he had specially sent someone to investigate.
Oh, go back to the old master and tell him that the wife of county officer Cao, Madam Cen, cant hold her liquor anymore and wants to go back to rest. We had a few jokes and let her go back.
As Lady Duanmu spoke, her gaze swept past the pale-faced Madam Cen andnded on Mo Ruyue.
This Lady Qin wasnt easy to get along with. If she wanted to use her status to suppress her, she wouldnt be able to do so if she didnt have enough weight.
Yes, Ill go back first. Ill have to trouble little brother to help inform my master when he sees him.
Madam Cen forced a smile. Now that her mind was in a mess, her form of address and attitude were also in a mess, and she had be a joke to others.
After sending away the manservant who came to ask questions, Lady Duanmus interest seemed to have waned. She waved her hand at Madam Cen and said, Since Madam Cen cant hold her liquor, she wont be able to stay any longer. Mrs. Liu, please send Madam Cen out.
A kind-looking woman stood out from behind her and responded with her eyes lowered. then, she looked up at Madam Cen. Madam Cen, please.
This look was like a cold sword that seemed to be able to pierce through ones heart, making Mo Ruyue let out a low huh when she saw it.
From the looks of it, this Madam Liu should be quite a character. The position of the magistrate was not small, but he might not be able to raise such a servant.
From the looks of it, there were many capable people in the Duanmu residence.
Whether good or bad, Ye Jingzhi was one of them, and so was this Madam Liu.
However, these two people were not of the same mind as Duanmu Xize. It could be considered his sorrow.
Madam Cen didnt dare to dy and quickly left with Madam Liu. She didnt even bother to look at Mo Ruyue.
Originally, she was full of anger and wanted to find fault with Mo Ruyue, but in the end, she embarrassed herself and couldnt even get back her capital. In the end, she had to go out dejectedly. She was afraid that in the future, her husbands family would also be implicated.
With this incident, she had originally wanted to make things difficult for Mo Ruyue, but she quickly restrained herself and didnt dare let anyone see it. She was afraid that she would follow in Madam Cens footsteps.
Some people were thinking about Lady Duanmus attitude toward Mo Ruyue just now. It looked like she had spoken a few words for her, but then she brought the topic back to the original one. Such an ambiguous attitude was theplete opposite of Master Duanmus way of ttering Mo Ruyue.
Everyone had their own thoughts, but they still had smiles on their faces. The atmosphere suddenly became awkward.
Mo Ruyue didnt care about the undercurrents on the table and under the table. She took this opportunity to say that she wanted to sober up and left the table to go to the garden.
Chapter 260 - 260 Getting Crazier
260 Getting Crazier
There were alsonterns ced in some small corners of the courtyard. It was notpletely dark, and it seemed that the owner had indeed put some thought into it.
The flower Hall was still filled with music and toasts, but the courtyard a few steps away seemed to have a soundproof barrier, and it suddenly became quiet.
The night wind blew, bringing some coolness. It was already autumn. Except for the noon when the autumn tigers might was still not reduced, the morning and evening were gradually getting colder.
Mo Ruyues clothes were still rtively thin, but her current physical fitness was different from the past. She was not afraid of the cold wind, let alone this little bit of cold.
!!
She looked up at the moon in the sky and realized that the moon was almost full again.
It seemed that she could not remember how many full moons she had been in this world. For an assassin, the precise control of time was more important than her life. However, since she came to this world, she seemed to be constantly breaking some principles and rules.
Sure enough, after living afortable life for a long time, the edges and corners would be ground away.
Lady Qin, its cold outside. Even if you want to sober up, you have to take care of your body.
Suddenly, a voice came from behind. Mo Ruyue turned her head slightly. It was Lady Duanmu standing behind her.
Dont worry, I know what Im doing,
She gave a short reply and did not have any intention of talking to Lady Duanmu.
I havent thanked Lady Qin for Qing Xis matter. Im really ashamed to say that youre her savior. As her mother, I cant thank you enough. I just dont know what Lady Qin wants.
Lady Duanmu spoke again, but the meaning behind her words was almost clear. She was actually a straight ball yer. This was something Mo Ruyue had not expected.
Shouldnt rich and powerfuldies like them be beating around the bush and using all sorts of tricks to make people y guessing games?
Lady Duanmu, Ive already gotten what I wanted. Its useless even if you force me to get what I dont want. I appreciate your gratitude, but theres no need for a thank you gift.
Mo Ruyue had directly expressed her attitude. It should not be difficult for Lady Duanmu to understand the meaning behind her words.
Lady Qin, I sincerely want to thank you. After all, that was a life-saving grace. I always feel that its not enough. As long as I can do it, theres no harm in Lady Qin asking.
Lady Duanmu was still smiling. It seemed that she still did not want to give up on the idea of repaying the favor.
Mo Ruyue sighed. Some peoples obsessions were really impossible tomunicate with. Since it was useless to say it, then she might as well not say it.
She shook her head and gave up onmunicating with Lady Duanmu. It did not matter even if Lady Duanmu treated her as an imaginary enemy. After all, she would note to Ping City again. Even if she wanted to use her tricks, she would have to find an opportunity.
Lady Duanmus smile froze on her face. When she saw that Mo Ruyue still had no intention of speaking, the smile on her face gradually faded.
She couldnt figure out this woman, but she knew that Duanmu Xize must have had feelings for her, which was why he was helping her so wholeheartedly.
Although he had the support of his maternal family, Duanmu Xize could only choose to continue to curry favor with her. However, if he could make good use of that womans abilities, she might be his new trump card.
Lady Qin, the guests in the flower hall are still waiting for me to greet them, so Ill take my leave first.
She turned around and left after saying that. She didnt expect Mo Ruyue to reply to her at all.
Madam Liu, send someone to keep an eye on her. If shes like what she said, its fine if she doesnt have any desires, but if she has any thoughts that she shouldnt have
Lady Duanmu did not continue. Madam Liu also nodded silently. The master and servant duo walked away in silence.
Mo Ruyue, who was still in the same ce, still looked up at the moon in the sky, but there was a cold smile on the corner of his lips.
If you want to touch me, lets see if you have the ability to not be afraid of the bacsh.
After the banquet ended, Mo Ruyue took the Duanmu familys carriage back to her residence. She would set off for home the next morning.
Although she wasnt the first toe to the banquet, she was the first to leave. the guests present seemed to be numb to this and were somewhat used to it.
She was now Master Duanmus favorite person, so it was not surprising that she had some privileges. This was also a reminder to them that Lady Qins backer was Master Duanmu.
The guests in Duanmu residence gradually dispersed. County Magistrate Chen Luyus carriage was parked at a corner not far from Duanmu residence. It was only when another carriage with the word Cao on it slowly drove over that the coachman got down and blocked the way.
County Officer Cao, can we have a talk?
Chen Luyu said to the carriage. Soon, a person alighted from the opposite carriage. It was none other than county officer Cao.
Lord Chen, what do you have to say?
In terms of position, the county lieutenant was only slightly lower than the county magistrate. Even if he was talking to Chen Luyu, county lieutenant Cao did not have to put on such a humble attitude.
However, his wife had just offended Mo Ruyue, which was equivalent to offending Duanmu Xize. Now was the time for him to try to keep a low profile and avoid making enemies. He could only judge the situation and lower his head, putting on a rtively humble attitude.
You need to discipline Madam Cen when you get back. Shes caused you so much trouble this time, so you need to know that. Dont let her make any assumptions. When a woman is soft-hearted, shell easily act rashly and cause trouble.
After Chen Luyu lectured him, he said in a serious tone, Im only saying this because were inws. Its for your own good. Dont me me for being a busybody.
County lieutenant Caos face was gloomy, and anger surged in his eyes. Even his jaw was faintly grinding a few times before he finally said, Master Chen is right. This lowly woman has long hair but little knowledge. After hearing someonesints, she wants to stand up for him. She should see how much she can do.
Now that such a disaster has urred, it is also this officials fault for not disciplining properly. This time when I return, I will definitely discipline her well, but I hope that Sir can help me in the future and help this official escape from this predicament.
When Chen Luyu heard this, heughed bitterly in his heart. Speaking of which, he was also in a difficult situation. He had no idea what Lady Qin had said in front of Master Duanmu to set up such a trap. He didnt even know how to get out of this, let alone save others.
However, he couldnt show any timidity. That would only confirm the rumors that the Cen family had heard.
At that time, county lieutenant Cao wouldnt be able to lower his voice and let him do whatever he wanted.
Well, its gettingte. County lieutenant Cao, you should go back. I have to go too.
Chen Luyu waved his hand and closed the window. The carriage then set off.
He leaned back against the wooden board of the carriage, closed his eyes and sighed. Once again, he was d that his wife, Madam Du, could not attend the banquet because of her illness. Otherwise, he was afraid that his end would be even worse.
That woman was no longer the virtuous and polite woman she used to be. Ever since she lost thewsuit and was forced to apologize to Mo Ruyue, she had be more and more crazy and unreasonable.
Chapter 261 - 261 Wishful Thinking
261 Wishful Thinking
This Madam Cen was Madam Dus cousin and close friend. Five years ago, she married the county officer of the neighboring county, Cao Chong, so she hade to the banquet with them.
Not long ago, Madam Cen hade to visit her cousin. He had been soft-hearted and allowed them to meet. He didnt expect that this would be the root of the problem, resulting in todays disaster.
Soft-hearted, I can actually be soft-hearted.
Chen Luyu mumbled. When he opened his eyes again, a cold glint filled his eyes, and there was no longer a trace of expression on his face. The carriage also fell silent, without a single sound.
No matter how many people were happy or sad, Mo Ruyue was the biggest winner. And tomorrow, she would retire and go home to live her life.
She had already obtained the blood she wanted. Duanmu Xize would send someone to deliver the ores she needed to the designated ce after she returned home. As for the money, someone had already sent the silver notes to Huichun Hall and was waiting for her to return to count the money.
Mo Ruyue had spent hisst night in Ping City by going to bed early.
The next morning, when the city gates opened, Mo Ruyue rode out of the city and left Ping City without looking back.
At this moment, Duanmu Xize had already arrived at the residence. After hearing the report from the person he had sent to monitor the situation, heughed at himself. This woman left so quickly. but it doesnt matter. She wille back willingly sooner orter.
Mo Ruyue galloped at full speed, her heart set on returning home like an arrow. The big ck horse seemed to have sensed her desire to go home. It galloped at a high speed, like a sh of lightning in the dark night. If it wasnt for Mo Ruyues excellent horse-controlling skills, she would have been sent flying long ago.
It was originally a journey that would take almost two days, but Mo Ruyue only spent less than a day to arrive. When she saw the big tree at the entrance of the Qin vige, she suddenly stopped the big ck horse.
The big ck horse stood up and neighed loudly. It then stopped and paddled its hooves restlessly.
Mo Ruyue patted the big ck horses neck lightly. You miss home too, and you want to go home earlier, dont you?
The big ck horse turned its head, as if it understood her words, and kept nodding its head while breathing heavily.
Then lets go home.
Mo Ruyue smiled and shook the reins. The woman and horse galloped out like lightning.
In the courtyard of the Qin familys eldest branch, the five babies were extremely busy.
Today was Aunt Lius birthday, and they wanted to prepare a table of good food to celebrate with her, to repay the care they had received from the Liu family.
The one in charge of cooking was naturally the fourth baby, Si Bao. He had grown a little taller now and did not need to step on a small bench to cook.
The other four babies, including Tang Tang, were all his helpers and were all ordered around by him.
Big Brother, were celebrating Grandma Lius birthday today. When are you going to give Mother a kiss too?
Tang Tang was about to take the dishes out when she suddenly turned to ask Da Bao.
For mother?
Da Bao was stunned for a moment. He then realized that they didnt seem to know when his mothers birthday was, let alone celebrate it for her.
Didnt we celebrate our birthdays too? This is not popr in our family, and maybe Mother does not like it.
Da Bao shook his head. To him, every birthday before this was no different from any other day. He would be beaten and starved. He just had to make do with life and fulfill his wish of bringing up his younger siblings. There was no such thing as being happy or not.
However, when was his mothers birthday?
Mother, Mother is back!
Ah! San Baos scream came from the courtyard and immediately interrupted Da Baos thoughts.
He suddenly turned his head and looked towards the courtyard. Tang Tang, on the other hand, cheered and ran out, even forgetting to put down the te in her hand.
Before Da Bao could finish his sentence, Tang Tang had already rushed to the courtyard entrance. Although her legs were the shortest, the speed at which she was moving was not slow at all.
Mother!
Mother!
Mother!
The babies had not even seen Mo Ruyues figure and were already running out in a swarm, shouting loudly. They were as happy as a group of ducklings that had just been released from their nest.
Mo Ruyue got off her horse when she reached the vige entrance and led the big ck horse all the way home. It was already dark and there was not enough light. She thought that she would only be recognized by her babies when she entered the house. She did not expect to hear San Baos clear and loud shout when she was only halfway through.
Then, there was a flurry of footsteps, as if the babies were running towards them.
Its so dark, why are you running around!
Mo Ruyue was shocked. She immediately threw down the big ck horses reins and rushed in the direction of the babies. The big ck horse was very intelligent and followed behind. It didnt need anyone to pull it.
Although every household had lit oilmps or candles, the light was not enough to illuminate the path outside the courtyard. It was really hard to imagine how San Bao could see and distinguish Mo Ruyue in such a situation.
The babies had just rushed out of the courtyard when Mo Ruyue was already outside. She was afraid that one of the babies would fall and get injured, so she even used a sleeve dart in her desperation. She arrived almost in the blink of an eye and just happened to catch San Bao, who was at the front.
Mother, its really you. Youve really returned!
San Bao buried his head into the warm and fragrant embrace. That familiar scent made him even more certain that the person hugging him was his mother without even looking at her face.
Tang Tang and Da Bao also pounced on Mo Ruyues body one after another. The te in Tang Tangs hand tilted, almost spilling the vegetables and soup on everyone.
Be careful!
Mo Ruyue quickly caught the te and knew that Si Bao had made it as soon as she smelled the aroma of the dish.
How did you know that mother wasing back? You even made such delicious dishes. Are you here to wee Mother back?
That dish was very time-consuming. Unless it was to celebrate something, one would rarely have the time and patience to make it.
Mother, we didnt know you wereing back. Today is Grandmother Lius birthday. She and Grandfather Liu have taken care of us for so long, so the brothers said that we should celebrate with Grandmother Liu to express our gratitude.
Ever since Tang Tang had pounced into Mo Ruyues arms, she had been sticking to her body like a little rice cake. She really didnt want to be separated from her for even a moment.
She answered her mothers question as she stuck to her.
Grandma Lius birthday
Mo Ruyue smiled bitterly. So she was overthinking things.
Thats right. Even she didnt know that she would being home today, let alone the babies. They were just celebrating Grandma Lius birthday. This was an experience that she had never experienced before.
...
As far as she could remember, she had been in the assassin training camp. She didnt know who her parents were, and she had nopanions to rely on. The only thing she had to do every day was to survive, by all means necessary.
That was why she had no idea when her birthday was, and she had no idea what it was like to celebrate her birthday.
Mother, older brothers also said that we still dont know when Mothers birthday is. When Mother returns, we must ask her properly. In the future, when that dayes, we will also celebrate Mothers birthday!
Chapter 262 - 262 The Autumn Harvest
262 The Autumn Harvest
By the way, todays table of dishes was made by Fourth Brother and us. Although we were only assistants, we also put in a lot of effort. Mother, we are very capable, right?
Tang Tang said proudly. She wasnt trying to im credit for herself, but she had counted in her brothers. This made Mo Ruyue very pleased.
In her previous life, she finally had a partner who was like light and shadow to her, and she would never worry about being betrayed. In this life, she had five cute and kind babies with different personalities.
It was worth it.
Mo Ruyue smiled and said, Theres no hurry. Lets celebrate Grandma Lius birthday first. Itll be your big brothers birthday in a few days. In the future, well celebrate every birthday of yours as a family, okay?
Good, good!
Tang Tang was so excited that she wanted to jump up. However, Mo Ruyue was hugging her too tightly, so she could only stomp her feet on the spot.
Da Bao and San Bao also cheered in unison and high-fived each other in excitement.
They would be able to celebrate their birthday in the future. Mother had always kept her word and would never lie to them.
Other than Si Bao, who was still in the kitchen, there was one more person missing. Mo Ruyue looked up into the courtyard and saw Er Bao standing by the door.
He hade out as well. Although he did not jump into her arms like the others, he still moved closer to her.
Mo Ruyue nodded in relief in her heart.
She thought about how hostile they were when they first met, and now, Er Bao was already her right-hand man. How could she not feel relieved?
Alright, its cold outside, and the dishes will get cold soon. Everyone, dont just stand outside like a fool. Quickly go inside.
Mo Ruyue stood up first and took the te from Tang Tangs hands.
Mother, I should have put the food in the food box just now and then brought it to Grandma Lius house. When I heard that you were back just now, I was so happy that I forgot about it. Now that the dishes are cold, what should we do?
Only then did Tang Tang remember the dishes in her hands. These were painstakingly made by Fourth Brother. She didnt want everyone to miss out on them because of her. That would be a waste.
Its fine. Leave it to mother. I promise I wont let this dish go to waste.
To Mo Ruyue, heating up a dish that didnt need to be re-heated and didnt destroy its original taste was just a piece of cake. As long as it could make her babies happy, she was willing to do anything.
Mm! I believe in Mother!
Tang Tang nodded her head hard, and a big smile bloomed on her face. She looked like a sweet candy.
San Bao, bring Big ck back to the stables. Da Bao, Tang Tang, lets go back and help Si Bao.
Mo Ruyue said to the babies one after another, then looked at Er Bao.
Er Bao, help me bring the first aid kit back to the room, and then help San Bao feed Big ck. Once the food is ready and the work is done, well go to Grandma Lius house and prepare for her birthday.
Ever since she returned from Ping City, all her troubles seemed to have disappeared in an instant. Mo Ruyue began to live a very peaceful andfortable life.
Every day, as long as she didnt go to the citys Huichun Hall to give medical services, she would personally drive the carriage to and from school with the five babies. If she needed to go to the city to give medical services, it was the Liu couple who would help her.
Now that Mo Ruyues family and the Liu family were getting along particrly well, there were more or less some rumors spreading in the vige that the Liu couple had long set their eyes on Mo Ruyues ability to make money and wanted to leave a way out for them in the future. That was why they had approached her step by step.
When it came to such rumors, the Liu couple would have exined it to them, butter Mo Ruyue advised them to rx their minds. It was up to others to talk, and they couldnt stop it, so why should they trouble themselves?
The two of them couldnt bear to part with their five sensible babies, so they listened to Mo Ruyues advice and only cared about their own lives. As time passed, the people who originally spread the rumors saw that they couldnt sow discord between the two families and gradually stopped talking.
After returning home, Mo Ruyue went to the valley of treasures again and found that the wolf pack had already moved in.
There were also many caves in the valley of treasures, enough for the wolves to rest. Although the number of wolves had decreased, they had recovered from their injuries and theirbat power had also been restored to a certain extent. It was not a problem for them to protect themselves.
After a period of rest and recuperation in autumn and winter, they would once again reproduce in spring. The giant wolf pack would quickly form a certain scale again.
Seeing that the weather was getting colder by the day, Mo Ruyue also began to make preparations for the winter.
It was the golden autumn, and the mountain was the time when resources were the most abundant. Mo Ruyue often stayed in the mountain for a whole day. Every time she went down the mountain, she would bring a cart full of all kinds of mountain products and wild game.
Her cart was ced on a slow tform not far away from the mountain. It was used to transport supplies in secret. She always picked the fruits in the mountain and kept them in her space. She would only transfer them to the cart when she was about to leave the mountain.
The vigers of the Qin Vige were also actively preparing for the winter. Sometimes, there would be people who wanted to go into the mountains with Mo Ruyue to hunt some wild game to make smoked meat.
Mo Ruyue was also very clear about their intentions. They wanted to use her power to make them safer. If they could also get some light and hunt some big prey or the like, that would be even better.
She had only attended one or two such invitations, but she had rejected all of them. She had no obligation to be someones bodyguard and helper all the time, and there were only a few people in the vige who were worthy of her help.
The days passed, and soon it was time for the autumn harvest.
During the separation, the eldest branch also got the eight acres ofnd that Qin Ming left behind after Er Baos persuasion.
These pieces ofnd, along with the ones that Old Master Qin had earned, had all been built outside for others to nt. Although Mo Ruyue had taken back eight acres ofnd, she didnt have the time and couldnt be bothered to nt it herself, so she still built it outside. Now, it was time to collect rent.
It just so happened that the private schools in the countryside would give the students a few days off during the busy farming season so that they could help the family collect food. Er Bao and the others were also on leave, so they could wait at home for the people who paid the rent.
Da Bao was prepared to be a big businessman in the future, so Mo Ruyue had also given him full authority on how to build thend and how to collect the rent in the future to train hismunication and nning skills.
On the second day of the babies holiday, the person who delivered the rent came to their door.
It was a middle-aged couple in their forties with a little boy of five or six years old. They seemed to be living a very tight life. The clothes on their bodies were still patched up. They had been washed until they were white and thin, but they were still wearing them.
The two adults were pushing a wheelbarrow with six bulging bags on it. Inside were the grains that were supposed to be handed over to the Qin familys first branch.
Is Lady Qin here?
The man peeked into the courtyard of the Qin familys eldest branch and shouted, but he only waited outside and did not enter.
Coming,ing.
Chapter 263 - 263 Paying Rent
263 Paying Rent
Da Bao was the first one to run out. He immediately understood when he saw the wheelbarrow behind the man.
Youre here to pay rent, right? Which family? Whats your name?
He was holding an ount book in his hand, his face full of unconceble excitement and eagerness to try.
Im Old Li from the east of the vige. Ive built three acres ofnd on the main familys side, and Ive harvested a total of nine stones worth of corn this year. ording to the contract I signed with the owner, I have to pay six stones worth of rent, so I have to pay 5.4 stones worth of corn. These are four stones, the rest will be handed over tomorrow.
Old Li answered seriously.
The Qin familys eldest branch had rented the eight acres ofnd to three families. After Mo Ruyue moved out, they all came to see the new owners. At that time, Mo Ruyue felt that it would be troublesome to sign the contract again. In addition, the time of the original contract was not up yet, so she continued to use the old contract.
Old Lis family was an outsider. They did not have their ownnd at the foot of the Qin Vige. Therefore, they could only rely on farming for others to live. Even if the condition given by the Qin family was as harsh as a six-cent rent, he could only grit his teeth and endure it.
Other than the vige heads family, the Qin family had the mostnd. Other families didnt even have enough for their own farming, let alone splitting thend for others to share their harvest.
Da Baos ount book was made by himselfter on. He had written down the situations of the three tenants in it. As soon as he heard Old Lis answer, he quickly turned to the page that recorded his familys situation.
Alright, then Ill have to trouble Uncle to carry the grain in and weigh it.
When Da Bao was making this ount book, he originally wanted to ask about the yield per acre in the past years. However, when he thought of the rtionship between his family and the Qin family, he gave up this idea.
In the past, when the tenants came to pay the rent, they would hand it over to Qin Shi. Whether it was the original owner Mo Ruyue or Madam Wang, they did not have the right to manage the household. They had no idea how much rent their family could collect every year.
Therefore, if they wanted to ask about the situation of the rent collection, they would have to deal with the Qin family. They were hoping that the main branch would take the initiative to find them so that they could be manipted. Of course, Da Bao would not give them this opportunity.
Without the previous data as a reference, Da Bao had another way, which was topare the grain production of other families in the vige.
Because Qin Ming joined the army, he had a sry, and thend he bought was rtively fertile. The best reference was the vige headsnd.
He had already asked around and found out that the vige heads familys acre ofnd was about three to four stone, so the data that Old Li reported should be correct. There was no need to hide anything.
After making the judgment, Da Bao marked a symbol behind Old Lis name. It was a symbol that only he could understand, a symbol that represented trust.
Old Li weighed the corn he sent. It was exactly the number he had said.
The scale of the Qin familys eldest branch had not been adjusted, so the amount of grain that Old Li had sent was not mixed with any water. Da Bao nodded and added another stroke behind Old Lis name.
Old Li did not say much. After weighing the grain, he picked up a bag of corn and said to Da Bao, Ill help you put the food away. Where should I put it?
Come with m. Its in the granary. It was just built not long ago.
Da Bao was also a chatterbox. He kept talking to Old Li as they walked.
Old Li still didnt say anything. After sending the grain to the granary once, he sent the remaining five bags of grain over.
Just as they were moving the grain, someone came in from outside.
He was also a tenant of the Qin familys main branch. Both families had the surname Qin, so they were rtives of the Qin family. ording to seniority, Da Bao had to call one fifth uncle and the other third uncle.
These two people also had two to three acres ofnd, but after paying taxes on the grain they had taken, there was not much left. The family was a little tight on food, so they also integrated thend of the Qin familys main branch. Although they could only leave four portions of grain, it was more or less a relief.
Initially, when they were facing the Qin n, they could not gain any advantage at all. They even had to pray that the Qin n would not find all sorts of reasons to deduct more grain.
Now that it was the Qin familys eldest branch who had to pay the rent, they heard that Mo Ruyue had given the management power to Da Bao and rarely took care of things, so they couldnt help but have an idea.
Da Bao, why are you home alone? Wheres your mother?
As soon as the man who Da Bao called third uncle entered the door, he saw Old Li carrying the grain to the side of the courtyard. Da Bao was holding a book in his hand and there was a scale in the courtyard. He knew that Old Li hade to pay the rent first.
He didnt expect Da Bao to be the one collecting rent, but he still asked to be on the safe side.
Third Uncle, youre here to pay rent, right? Just tell me, I can make the decision.
Da Bao didnt answer his question, but went straight to the point.
Oh, hehe, that works too. My family has built three acres ofnd, and we got 2.2 stones for each acre, so the total is 6.6 stones. The rent should be 3.9 stones, so I brought it all over for you today.
Third uncle Qin said with a smile.
Da Bao was originally preparing to take notes in his book. When he heard this, he could not help but frown.
They were both their ownnds, and they were also connected together, so why was there such a big difference in the grain?
He turned to look at third uncle Qin and smiled, Third uncle, I heard that the vige heads family can harvest more than three catties of corn per acre ofnd. Our two familiesnds are not far apart, so how can there be such a big difference in the grain harvest?
The third uncle Qin was stunned. He originally thought that Da Bao was just a little kid who hadnt even grown his hair yet and was very easy to fool. He didnt expect that he would actually hit the nail on the head.
Aiya, you dont understand this kind ofnd. This years weather is abnormal, so the fertility of the fields cant keep up. Besides, even the same field has more fertilizer than the other, so its normal for there to be a difference in the yield of the crops.
Da Baos eyes darkened after he exined, but he still said with a smile, If thats the case, then Third Uncle, please bring the grain over to be weighed.
Third uncle Qin originally wanted to turn around and go out to get the food, but he happened to see Old Liing out after delivering the food. He rolled his eyes and said, Old Li, Im here to deliver the food myself. Can you help me move it?
Alright, he said.
Old Li responded briefly and followed third uncle Qin out.
Seeing this, Da Bao furrowed his brows even more.
Not long after, Old Li came back with two bags of food, and third uncle Qin came back with a small bag of food in his hand.
Da Bao, this years harvest is not good. I want to discuss with you. Can you pay half of the rent first? You also know that Third Uncles family has a lot of people, and even after paying rent every year, the family is still tight.
This year, Third Uncles family has a grandson and another mouth. If it wasnt for your familys kindness, I wouldnt have opened my mouth.
Although he sounded like he was negotiating, he seemed to have Da Bao under his control. He moved half of the grain into the yard.
Lets not talk about this first. Third Uncle, you should weigh the grain first.
As Da Bao spoke, he motioned for him to put the grain on the scale.
Chapter 264 Youre Short On Numbers
Chapter 264 You''re Short On Numbers
Two big and one small bags of grain were ced on the scale, and the weight was 1.7 stone.
"This can''t be right. If it''s calcted by half, it should be 1.9 stone. Why is it 1.7 stone? Third Uncle, the amount you have isn''t enough."
Da Bao carefully checked the numbers again and turned to look at third uncle Qin.
"How is that possible? I weighed it properly at home before bringing it over. Why is it not enough for you? Da Bao, you can''t do this!"
Third uncle Qin originally thought that the Qin family''s eldest branch must be the same as the Qin family, that the scale had been modified. If the scale was not enough and the difference was too big, he could also make an issue out of it. In the end, he didn''t expect the scale of the Qin family''s eldest branch to be an urate scale.
This time, he had already hidden a portion of the food and was acting unreasonably. Now, he didn''t even have the opportunity to find more food for himself.
"Third uncle, the scale in my house is urate. it''s your scale that''scking in quantity. How can you say that it''s my scale''s problem? Don''t tell me that you''ve been bullying me since I am young and don''t understand these things?"
At this moment, the smile on Da Bao''s face gradually disappeared. His small face became serious, and he looked a little imposing.
"Da Bao, you''re considered my master now. How would I dare to deceive you with an insufficient amount of rent? But you can''t just say that I reduced the amount, right? If I dare to do that, if you don''t give me thend in the future, who am I going to reason with?"
Third uncle Qin also went all out. Anyway, Mo Ruyue was not at home now. As an adult, how could he not y with a few dolls? Let''s make things real first, then think of other wayster, who cares if it''s a cry, a tantrum, or a suicide?
In short, he wanted the grain, and he wanted to continue growing thend.
The four babies in the house had all seen what was happening in the courtyard outside.
San Bao was a little worried as he said to Er Bao, "Second Brother, are we just going to watch and not care about Eldest Brother?"
"Have you forgotten what Mother said before she left?" Collecting rent was a form of training for Da Bao. What his mother cared about was not the food, but whether Da Bao could hold up. He''s going to be a big businessman in the future. If he can''t even handle such a small matter, how is he going to do business in the future?
Although Er Bao said this, he had already clenched his fists tightly.
Da Bao was being questioned so aggressively, but the smile on his face was still there. However, the smile had obviously faded a lot.
"Third Uncle, you''re getting old, why is your temperament also rising? My mother said that being angry is harmful to the body. If you get angry, you won''t be able to eat the food that has been left behind."
Da Bao''s words made it impossible for anyone to pick out any logic from them. They were clearly all good words, but they could still make people so angry that they vomited blood.
When third uncle Qin heard this, he was seething with anger. This little brat actually told him to be careful of being angered to death?
Even though he was the child of the main family, in terms of seniority, he had to be called third uncle! How could he be so disrespectful to his elders? He was simply rebelling!
"You, how can you say that? I''m your third uncle!"
He pointed his finger at Da Bao and was so angry that he could not even speak properly.
"You''re the third whatever, we have to be reasonable."
Da Bao appeared to be more at ease. He continued to say with a smile, "If you think there''s something wrong with our scale, there''s an uncle cksmith in the vige. We can let him see if the scale has been tampered with."
"Moreover, the amount of rent each person has to pay is clearly stated in the contract. Even if you want us to give you half, there has to be a discussion process, not just a one-sided agreement."
"Finally, you said that the three acres ofnd only had six piculs of corn. Then I really should go and see what''s wrong with thatnd. Why is it that other families only have nine piculs of corn, and there''s such a big difference between yours and theirs?"
When he said this, he paused slightly and stared into third uncle Qin''s eyes, but he did not say anything.
Third uncle qin was no longer as calm as he was before. His eyes were wandering, and his hands were covered in cold sweat.
At first, he thought that since Da Bao was in charge of collecting rent, the young man would be fooled by him. But after some confrontation, he found that the young man was so difficult to deal with.
"Da Bao, look at what you''re doing. Isn''t it a good thing that your third uncle is here to deliver the rent to you? Why are we quarreling? "
Third uncle Qin forced a smile and tried to y the family card. However, before he could say what he wanted to say, he was interrupted by Da Bao.
"Third Uncle, it''s a good thing that you''re here to pay the rent. We know that your family''s life isn''t easy. In order to not let us take advantage of your family, we should be even more calctive, right?"
"So, I think we should do it this way. Let my brother ask uncle vige chief toe and take a look. His family''snd is growing very well, but our family''snd is just a road away. Why is the harvest so bad? Third Uncle, your ie has also decreased. Won''t this year''s hard work be in vain?"
"Let''s find the problem and avoid it next year. We''ll strive to get 90 piculs of grain, then you''ll have more grain left right?"
"Ask San Bao to invite the cksmith uncle over to see if our scale is urate. If it''s not, then adjust it quickly.. What do you think?"
Third uncle Qin was already confused and disoriented by these words. How could he dare to agree to follow Da Bao''s n? If he really did so, he would be greatly embarrassed!
"Da Bao, don''t, don''t, don''t be like this. Listen to Third Uncle. We can discuss this matter, right?"
Third uncle Qin racked his brain to think of a way to resolve the situation.
"Fine, just pretend that I didn''t say anything just now. There''s no rush to pay the rent today, right? If Third Uncle''s eyes are ying tricks on him, he won''t have the face to see you."
He was quick-witted and thought of a solution in a few sentences.
"Since that''s the case, then Third Uncle can take the grain back and weigh it again. However, I hope you won''t make a mistake the next time youe."
Da Bao had no intention of making things difficult for third uncle Qin. On the contrary, he agreed to his request very generously.
"Alright, alright, I definitely won''t."
Third uncle Qin agreed repeatedly and reached out to take the food bag. At the same time, he turned his head to look for Old Li. however, Old Li had already left in half a day''s time, and his shadow was nowhere to be seen in the courtyard.
"Third Uncle, do you want Da Bao''s help? But I still have to continue collecting rent, what should I do?"
Qin Qingduo tilted his head and cut off third uncle Qin''s words before he could speak.
"Ah, no, no. The grain is so heavy. Why would third uncle ask Da Bao to carry it? You can''t carry it with your small body."
Third uncle Qin smiled awkwardly. He did have this idea just now, but he didn''t expect that Da Bao would see through it and put it out before he could say it.
Helplessly, he could only make two trips back and forth and move the grain away.
Chapter 265 - 265 Successfully Passed
265 Sessfully Passed
Da Bao then looked at thest person in the courtyard who was waiting to pay the rent. Before he could speak, that person spoke first, Da Bao, Fifth Uncle left in a hurry when he came and forgot if the number on the scale was correct. Why dont you allow Fifth Uncle to go back and take a look?
After seeing the lesson of third uncle Qin, he no longer dared to look down on Da Bao. In order not to follow in the footsteps of third uncle Qin, he thickened his face and intended to correct his mistake.
When Da Bao heard this, how could he not know what was going on? he sneered secretly in his heart, but he still said with a smile on his face, Fifth Uncle, youve saved me a lot of trouble. Its my duty to investigate, but I cant stop you if you want to investigate yourself first.
Yes, yes. Then Fifth Uncle will go back first. Youre busy, so theres no need to send me off.
!!
When the man came in, he didnt bring any food with him, which saved him a lot of trouble. As long as he left empty-handed, he could still save some face.
It was not until the courtyard had quieted down that the four babies in the house came out one after another.
San Bao took the lead and walked around Da Bao twice. He clicked his tongue in admiration and said, Eldest brother, your mouth really knows how to talk. Pointing at the mulberry and scolding the locust, pointing east and west, pointing at the deer as a horse, pointing at the pixiu. In any case, even a dead person can be fooled by you. No wonder you want to go into business in the future.
I think youll definitely be a first-ss profiteer in the future!
Go, go, go, youre the profiteer!
Da Bao said unhappily, Mother said it before. She would rather betray the world than teach the world to betray me! I do business to make money, who would do business that would lose money!
He wants to take advantage of me, Da Bao. Tsk, if I dont make him lose all his underwear, Ill be letting down my mothers teachings!
As soon as Da Baos voice fell, a voice came from outside the door, Well said, hes the son I raised!
Mo Ruyue walked in from outside the courtyard, carrying a wild boar on her shoulder and dragging arge, coarse cloth bag in her hand.
She had juste back from preparing the mountain goods and had been listening outside the door for a while. Although she didnt see the whole process of the incident, she could roughly guess what had happened after hearing Da Baos words.
It was nothing more than a story of a tenant who wanted to take advantage of the new owner by unscrupulous means. But now it seemed that Da Bao had handled it well.
Mother, youre back!
Da Bao turned around and saw her. He immediately showed a big smile.
His mother had just praised him!
This was the best reward for Da Bao, which meant that he had passed the test smoothly.
Well, well have barbecued meat tonight. Ill leave the pigs brain for you. Itll nourish your brain.
Yes, Da Bao responded happily. Then he felt that something seemed to be wrong with that sentence, but he couldnt figure out what it was.
Stop eavesdropping ande out to help me with my work, Mo Ruyue said to the babies.
As soon as the door opened, the three babies ran out with smiles on their faces, and Er Bao followed them slowly.
The familyughed and chatted as they got busy. After a while, a huge wild boar was divided into a pile of meat.
San Bao, go and give Grandma Liu a piece of streaky pork and a te of pork ribs.
Mo Ruyue pointed at the meat that had been divided and asked San Bao to send the meat to the Liu family.
Alright!
San Bao responded and went to get the meat. He carried the pork belly in his left hand and the pork ribs in his right hand. The two items added up to a few dozen pounds, but in his hands, it was like carrying a piece of straw. It wasnt difficult at all.
Mother, Ill go with San Bao. Ill be back soon!
Da Bao threw away the marinating meat in his hand and ran out without waiting for Mo Ruyues reply.
Mo Ruyue wasnt annoyed. When she saw that Tang Tang was about to take over her job, she immediately stopped her. Tang Tang, have you finished your work?
Not yet. I thought that since well be applying marinating sauce anyway, Ill help Second Brother make his share.
Tang Tang shook her head. She was keenly aware that her mother didnt seem to want her to do this.
You should finish your work first. Its not far from Grandma Lius house, so it wont take long.
Mo Ruyue shook her head. Although it was good that the babies had the awareness to help each other, sometimes it also depended on the situation. She couldnt let them develop the irresponsible idea that they could leave their own things behind just because someone could help them.
Soon, Da Bao came back. He saw that everyone was busy with their own things, and his pot of meat was still there without anyones help. He couldnt help butin.
Why isnt anyone helping? When the charcoal is ready, the meat isnt marinated yet. What are we going to use to roast it?
Da Bao, was San Bao unable to move the meat just now?
Mo Ruyue was making charcoal in the charcoal basin and was preparing to transfer it to the self-made grill. She turned around and asked when she heard Da Baosint.
No, I was just thinking that it would be faster if I helped him.
For a moment, Da Bao didnt know why his mother would ask such a question. He touched the back of his head as he spoke.
Since you dont need help and youve left behind what you should be doing, why would others help you? Dont they have their own things to do?
Mo Ruyues question was more direct this time. Da Bao finally understood what the problem was.
Mother, Im sorry. Ill be more careful next time.
He immediately apologized to Mo Ruyue.
His mother was right. Everyone had their own things to do. He put down what he should do and helped those who didnt need help. It was wrong to let others help him do what he should.
Mother isnt picking on your faults, its just that once some small things be a habit, it will always make a big mistake at some time in the future.
Mo Ruyue would now correct the babies behavior in some small details. Although she had said that she would not restrain their personalities and would let them grow up freely, it did not mean that she would let them grow up wildly.
Alright, its not a big deal. Theres still time. Hurry up and get the meat ready. The charcoal will be ready in a while.
After seeing Da Baos attitude, Mo Ruyue nodded slightly and didnt continue to pester him on this matter. She immediately led his babies to continue working.
The wild boar meat, which had been processed with special marinating, didnt have any earthy taste at all. Only the chewiness and freshness that were about to melt in the mouth remained.
Each of the five babies was holding a bunch of meat skewers in their hands. Each of them ate until their mouths were full of oil. They didnt even have the time to talk. They only wished they could swallow their tongues together.
Mother, why does the wild boar meat taste different every time? Even when roasted, the taste is different. Is it because of the heat control?
Si Bao did not forget to ask why he was eating. He was already the number one head chef in his family and would be the number one divine chef in the world in the future. Therefore, anything that involved eating would pique his interest.
...
Chapter 266 - 266 Taking Advantage Of Her
266 Taking Advantage Of Her
This time, I used a different seasoning. Si Bao, the world is so big that there are countless delicacies. The same dish will taste different when cooked by different people. Its not just the heat control but also the ingredients used. Sometimes, even the pot and side dishes will affect the final taste of the dish.
Mo Ruyue exined in detail.
Mother, is it the same logic to see a doctor and get medicine? Different people who are seeing the same illness may have an increase or decrease in a certain medicine, which will have different effects on the illness.
Tang Tang suddenly interjected.
!!
Yes, in the end, personal experience and judgment are the most critical factors that will affect the final oue of this matter. So, you must remember this when you do things in the future.
The babies nodded their heads in agreement.
During the free time after the meal to digest the food, Da Bao found Mo Ruyue and handed her the ledger in his hand, saying, Mother, today is the first time I collected rent. I feel that our original tenant, Old Li, is a dutiful person. He pays the rent on time and in quantity, so its not wrong to give him thend.
However, our Qin familys two rtives, Fifth Uncle and Third Uncle, are not so honest. Especially Third Uncle. He took advantage of my young age. Not only did he tamper with the rent, but he also took the initiative and directly cut it in half. I was thinking that I wont let them nt thend next year.
He was talking about serious business, and he looked like he could make decisions.
Arent you afraid that theyll use their kinship and seniority to pressure you?
Mo Ruyue asked with a smile.
If theyre afraid, Ill just take their rent and say nothing.
Mo Ruyue was very satisfied with Da Baos answer. She immediately nodded and said, Ive already said that youll be fully in charge of this matter. I have no opinion on how to deal with it.
When third uncle Qin came to pay the rent the next day, he was shocked when he heard the bad news that he wouldnt be allowed to rent thend next year.
Da Bao, what did you just say? Youre just ying with Third Uncle right?
He asked in disbelief, eager to hear a definite answer.
Third Uncle, why would I joke with you? Its just that we only sign this contract once a year, and well be signing a new contract after this year, so I decided not to sign it first.
Da Bao still left some face for third Uncle Qin. Speaking of which, they were all rtives, so it would be easier to meet in the future if he left a line for them.
Da Bao, dont tell me you hate Third Uncle for what happened yesterday? Isnt it just a little less rent? Ive already made it up for you today, why are you still wasting money?
Third uncle Qin was anxious. If he lost thend of the Qin familys first branch, then it would be impossible for his family to even live in poverty.
Third Uncle, how can you say that I hate you? We originally signed a one-year contract, which can be terminated at any time. Ournd cant be rented to you just because its dead. Da Bao cant afford to bear the crime of bearing a grudge.
Da Bao shook his head. It seemed that third uncle Qin was still the same as yesterday. He didnt take him seriously at all.
Then tell me, Ive been managing thisnd for five to six years and its always been fine. Why do you want to take it back when its suddenly handed over to your family? You dont even give me a reason.
Third uncle Qin continued to ask, as if he had forgotten what he had done yesterday.
The smile on Da Baos face faded a little, and he could not help but sigh.
Third Uncle, thisnd originally belonged to my first branch, but it had always been in Grandmas Hands. Have you forgotten that my first branch is the real owner of these few acres ofnd?
Its my ownnd, and I need the permission of the tenant before I give it to anyone. Do you want me to understand this?
No, no, Da Bao, youve misunderstood.
Third uncle Qin immediately came back to his senses and exined to Da Bao. Although he didnt want to lower himself to a little kid, he could only endure it for the time being under the current circumstances.
Third Uncle, what you mean is that although the contract was signed for a year, there was no problem. Now that you suddenly say that you cant give me thend, how can I not be anxious?
The whole family is relying on these extra acres ofnd to have a little food. Da Bao, can you bear to see Third Uncles family starve?
Third uncle Qin changed his method and immediately softened his attitude. He began to use the trick of injuring himself.
He didnt believe that if he put down his face and begged for mercy, Da Bao would take back his decision on ount of their rtionship as rtives.
Third Uncle, you only harvested a little more than six piculs of corn from the three acres ofnd you nted. After deducting the rent you paid us, how much food do you have left? How many days will it be enough for you to eat?
Do I have to apply half of it every time you pay rent? Third Uncle, if thats the case, why would we need to sell ournd? The grain we grow can only be recovered by a small amount. Even you cant ept such a loss-making business, right?
If ournd isnt fertile enough, we can just take it back and think of a way to raise it. When its fertile enough, we can harvest more grain, right?
Every word that Da Bao said was very reasonable, making third uncle Qin unable to refute at all.
It was only now that he realized that he had really looked down on Da Bao. the act of cutting the rent in half yesterday was the real reason for todays oue.
Da Bao, Third Uncle was wrong. It was Third Uncle who was wrong! I shouldnt have acted on my own ord yesterday. Can you forgive Third Uncle this time? Third Uncle knows how to farm and also know how to raisend. I guarantee that I can raise those three acres ofnd to be fertile. Next year, Ill definitely give you a full amount ofnd to pay rent, okay?
Third uncle Qin kept pleading, but Da Bao had already made up his mind, so he would not be swayed by his pleading.
If he had only hidden a small amount of rent yesterday, it would have been fine. After all, his family had arge poption and there was not enough food to eat, but he could also give them a chance to redeem themselves.
Butter on, he had taken the liberty to cut the rent by half. He had only informed them instead of discussing it, which had vited Da Baos taboo.
Since third uncle Qin couldnt figure out who was the real master, Da Bao didnt mind teaching him.
Indulging him once was giving him a chance to take advantage of him. Da Bao would never make such a mistake.
Third Uncle, you dont have to say anything. Im just telling you the result, not asking for your consent. Dont get it wrong.
Seeing that Da Bao was determined to take back the three acres ofnd, third uncle Qin immediately jumped up with blood-red eyes.
Da Bao, you little brat. Youre trying to take the lives of my entire family!
As he spoke, he raised his fan-sized palm and was about to hit Da Baos face.
Originally, Da Bao thought that after they had made things clear, everyone would part on good terms. He didnt expect that third uncle Qin would actually say that he couldnt reason and still wanted to fight.
He stood firmly on the lower part of his body and easily dodged the p with his waist strength. Then, he grabbed third uncle Qins arm and twisted it, putting his arm behind his waist.
Chapter 267 - 267 Return Without Success
267 Return Without Sess
It was not over yet. Da Bao lifted his hand slightly, and third uncle Qin immediately stood on his tiptoes and cried out in pain.
Third uncle Qin, I respect you as my elder, so I dont want to fall out with you. But if you want to use your seniority to fight me, I wont let you go.
He had followed Mo Ruyue to train in martial arts for the past few months, and it was not for nothing. Among the four brothers of the Qin family, his martial strength was even above the martial arts fanatic San Bao, second only to his brother Er Bao.
His mother had been teaching them all kinds of martial arts since a long time ago. There were fighting, thai boxing, one move to defeat the enemy, and so on. They were all things he had never heard of before. However, now that he could easily break a small tree as thick as a bowl with a punch, it was definitely not a boast.
Therefore, when third uncle Qin fought with him, he had no advantage at all except for his height. Da Bao even felt that he was bullying third uncle Qin even if he fought back.
Da Bao, let go! Today, Im going to find your mother and have a good chat with her. Not only did you unreasonably take back thend, but you also hit me. Youre simply disrespecting your elders, and youre so arrogant!
Third uncle Qin wanted to struggle, but when he moved a little, his wrist seemed to be broken. He couldnt exert any strength at all, let alone break free.
You still want to find me? Havent you had enough of the lesson my son taught you?
An ice-cold voice came from outside the courtyard. Mo Ruyue immediately jumped down from the roof.
Qin Lady Qin, youre home.
As soon as third uncle Qin saw Mo Ruyue, his legs and stomach began to cramp, and he began to stammer.
You dared to hit my son when I was at home. What if I wasnt around?
Mo Ruyue slowly walked over. With every step she took, third uncle Qin subconsciously took a step back.
No, no, no. how could it be? I was just just confused.
He was just thinking about how to make Da Bao submit to him, but now he regretted not leaving quickly. If he had known that Mo Ruyue was at home, he would not have dared to make a move on Da Bao.
You heard what he said just now. In the future, you wont have a share of mynd. Get lost!
Mo Ruyue had waited until Da Bao had almost solved all the problems before she came forward. She wasnt helping Da Bao solve the problem.
When third uncle Qin heard Mo Ruyues words, he threw away the bag of grain in his hand. He didnt even bother to count the amount, turned around, and ran away.
Mother, your words are still the most useful.
As Da Bao spoke, he moved the bags of grain to the scale. The amount was correct this time. It seemed that third uncle Qin also saw that although Da Bao was young, he was not easy to fool. He was afraid of losing the three acres ofnd, so he made up for the amount.
However, he had never expected that Da Bao would be so heartless. He had already decided not to give him any morend. Whether or not he would make up for the amount, the result would not change.
Da Bao, I saw it clearly just now. You did things with reason and evidence, organized things, and knew when to advance and retreat. Even in the end, you attacked when it was time to attack. You didnt embarrass me at all. On the contrary, I am very pleased and proud of you!
It was rare for Mo Ruyue to say such a long string of ttering words. Da Bao was so dizzy that he felt like he was stepping on cotton. He staggered a little as he walked forward.
Mother, youve praised Eldest Brother so much that youve almost forgotten your own name.
Tang Tang happened toe out of the house and saw Da Baos blushing face and silly smile. She couldnt help but tease him. She even reached out and scratched her face twice, making a face at Da Bao.
Go, go, go. Why are you everywhere? Go feed your chickens and ducks.
Da Baos face turned even redder at his sisters teasing. He wanted to grab her and tickle her, but he couldnt bear to leave the scale. He thought that if his sister left, maybe his mother could praise him again.
Mo Ruyue didnt notice Da Baos thoughts. Seeing that the matter here was settled, she went straight out of the courtyard and went to the back mountain.
This time, she entered the mountains to bid farewell to the giant wolves.
The weather was getting colder, and it could start snowing at any time. It would be very dangerous to enter the mountains at that time.
With the help of the giant wolves, the house was stocked with an abundance of supplies, and even her space was stuffed with a lot. Even if they did not go into the mountains to hunt for the entire winter, it was enough for them to eat and drink every day.
Mo Ruyue no longer needed to use her prey to exchange for money with Guani restaurant, so after her short-term contract expired, she mentioned to the young master that she would not renew it.
At that time, the young master even said with regret, Lady Qins skills are so good, the prey she caught are all first-ss high-quality. No matter if its thepleteness of the fur or the freshness of the meat, others cantpare.
The returning customers in our building are already addicted to it, even the fur merchants are particrly fond of buying the furs provided by Lady Qin. When I think that there will be no more in the future, it really makes me wring my wrist.
After hesitating for a while, he still said to Mo Ruyue, Lady Qin, I know that you have a lot of things to do now, but if its only asionally, you can provide our restaurant withrge prey, such as tigers, bears, and the like. Is that okay?
Mo Ruyue finally agreed to his request. After all, she also needed to go into the mountains to visit her wolf friends. If she could encounter bears or tigers, it was not impossible to hunt them.
Soon, Mo Ruyue arrived at the valley of treasures. However, this time, there were only two giant wolves guarding a few small wolves in the valley. The other wolves, including the ck wolf king, had disappeared.
Wheres your king?
Mo Ruyue walked around the valley and could only ask the two big wolves who were left behind to guard the ce.
Unfortunately, even if they could understand her words, they could not respond to her. In such arge mountain range, she had no way of knowing where the wolves had gone.
Of course, she could use a tracking spell, but judging from therge number of food reserves left in the valley, it didnt seem like she had gone out to hunt.
During this period of time, the wolf pack had not only helped Mo Ruyue hunt, they had also prepared enough food for themselves to survive through the winter.
It was neither a hunt nor a migration. She didnt know when they left or how long they had been gone for. Even if Mo Ruyue wanted to track them, she wouldnt be able to leave the mountain in a day.
Forget it, Ill go back first. I have to at least say hello to the babies. Otherwise, theyll suddenly disappear when they see me entering the mountain. I dont know how worried theyll be.
Mo Ruyue thought for a while and decided to go home first.
After bidding farewell to the giant wolf that had stayed behind, Mo Ruyue returned without any sess and hurriedly went down the mountain.
Just as she was leaving the valley of treasures, the pack of wolves that were already far away on the other side of the mountain range was confronting a man in ck.
Youve been following me for three days. Arent you afraid of death?
The man was dressed in ck from head to toe. He even wore a ck wolf mask on his face, revealing only a pair of eyes that were as bright as the stars and a well-defined jaw.
Chapter 268 - 268 He’s Simply Not Human!
268 Hes Simply Not Human!
A huge ck wolf stood in front of the pack of wolves, staring straight at the man in ck. Strangely, there was no killing intent in its eyes, but it was full of suspicion.
It kept twitching its nose, as if it was trying to confirm something.
The man in ck also knew that the wolves had no intention of killing him, but he had been followed by the wolves for three days, and he didnt know the reason. He was running out of patience.
The ck wolf lowered its head and slowly took two steps forward. It didnt take an attacking posture. Instead, it seemed to be getting closer to the man in ck to confirm something.
What do you want to confirm?
The man in ck seemed to have seen through the ck wolfs thoughts. Heughed at himself after asking the question.
He should have gotten used to this kind of loneliness, but why was he talking to the wolf now?
Therefore, that saying made sense. The longer he interacted with people, the more he liked animals. Even if it was a group of cunning and cruel wolves, he could still talk to them.
Although he felt that it was ridiculous to talk to the wolf, the man still reached out his hand and let the ck wolf smell the back of his hand. At the same time, he was surprised to find that the ck wolfs tail was actually wagging gently.
Wolves werent dogs, but when expressing their closeness and submission, they would also wag their tails like dogs.
Although the ck wolfs tail was wagging very slowly and with a very small range, the man in ck could see it very clearly.
Was it expressing its goodwill to him?
Not only did the man in ck not clear his confusion, but he was even more confused.
He was very sure that this was the first time he had encountered this pack of giant wolves. At that time, he and the wolf pack had been walking in the mountain ridge and the valley in peace. Obviously, the pack of wolves had not been chasing him at that time, but they had suddenly turned around and rushed toward him.
He relied on his ghostly skills and didnt put the wolves in his eyes. It was only when he found that he couldnt shake off the pursuit of the wolves no matter what he did that he began to get serious.
If it was not for the fact that he did not detect any killing intent from the wolves, the man in ck would have killed them all after being tracked for a day. How could he allow them to follow him for three days?
But now, these wolves were actually showing him a sense of closeness. What was going on?
No matter how intelligent the man was, he could not guess the real reason behind this.
I still have a mission, so I cant waste my time with you in this deep mountain. If were fated to meet again in the future, lets meet again.
The man in ck subconsciously felt that the wolves could understand him, so he said to the ck wolf directly.
As expected, the ck wolf nodded slightly, turned around, and left with the wolf pack.
A crack appeared on the ck clothed mans ice cold face. He had never thought that getting rid of this pack of wolves that had been chasing him for three days would only require such a short sentence.
However, he didnt lose hisposure for long. After the wolves disappeared into the forest, he turned around and continued to walk deep into the mountains.
Two dayster, the man in ck walked out of the mountain range, pursed his lips and whistled.
Not long after, a handsome ck horse galloped from the distance and stopped in front of him. It kept nodding and raising its hooves to show affection.
This ck horse was exactly the same as Mo Ruyues, except that there was a whirlpool-like hair on its forehead that could distinguish the two horses.
Lets go,
The man in ck mounted the horse and patted its neck. Then, he shook the reins and the man and horse rushed out almost instantly, disappearing in the blink of an eye.
An hourter, the man was already sitting in a room in an inn.
This was the best sky room in the entire inn. There was a package on the table in front of him, and he didnt look like he was resting, but rather waiting for someone.
Soon, there was a rhythmic knock on the door, and the man in ck immediately responded, Enter.
The door opened, and a luxuriously dressed young man walked in with a smile.
Ah Ying, youre the fastest toplete the task again. Youre indeed the number one in the building. No one canpare to your speed and quality!
As the man spoke, he walked to the table and sat down. He poured himself a cup of tea and drank it in one gulp, ignoring the fact that the tea was already a little cold.
Hey, you should pay more attention to the quality of life. This tea is not authentic herbal tea. Even if you drink it warm, it is better than cold tea. It is a pity that this pot of good tea is worth 100 taels of silver.
Stop being so long-winded, check the goods, and pay up.
The man in ck didnt respond to him at all. He didnt even bother to say a few more words.
Alright, alright, alright. Youre the boss. Youre really hard to please.
Although the young mans tone was resentful, his actions were not sloppy at all.
After he opened the package, a white porcin jar was revealed. He then carefully opened the lid a crack, and a strange fragrance immediately hit his face, making him quickly cover the lid again.
Good fellow, you really managed to get it?
The young man looked at the man in ck in surprise. There was only a small gap, but the whole room was filled with that strange fragrance. He didnt need to look carefully to know that the items for this mission were definitely inside. There was no way to fake it.
This was a double S rank mission that had been hanging in the building for many years. It was to go to the depths of the mountain range and retrieve that treasure.
Who knew how many people had died in the mountains toplete this mission, but this man called Ah Ying had only been in the building for two months, and he couldplete this super difficult mission without any effort. He was not human!
Jealousy shed in the young mans eyes, but he quickly hid it with a smile.
Congrattions, Ying. Afterpleting this mission, youre now the top killer in the tower. Even the tower master has to give you some leeway. In the future, this brother will still need your help, so you cant refuse!
As he spoke, he took out a tourmaline ring from his pocket and ced it directly beside the hand of the man in ck.
The color of the tourmaline was excellent, and the lines were natural. It was obviously carved directly from a huge piece of tourmaline, and its value itself was very shocking.
This is the reward for this time. As usual, you can open the divine-level treasure chest of the capitals Jin Bao bank. The things inside are all yours.
The man in ck picked up the ring and put it on his left thumb. Without saying another word to the young man, he got up and walked out of the door.
Hey, youve earned a lot this time. Cant you treat me to a good meal? At the very least, this bro is also the person who pulled the strings for this mission of yours. You wouldnt refuse to give me this little benefit, right?
The young man shouted from behind him, but the man in ck acted as if he didnt hear him. Instead of taking the stairs, he jumped over the railing and jumped down. Soon, there were screams from all over the ce.
This person never takes the normal path.
The young man shook his head and stopped chasing after her. Instead, he sat down at the table again.
...
His hand had just touched the teapot when another figure shed into the room and closed the door behind him.
Chapter 269 - 269 Hearing Things?
269 Hearing Things?
Tell our people to be careful. Ah Yings ability is far beyond our expectations. Im afraid that some of our brothers have already been discovered by him. If he was not familiar with the rules of the building, how could you still be alive?
The man who had been smiling just now had now turned cold, and his voice had changed from light and clear to dark and deep.
This subordinate will be careful.
The figure who had just entered the door answered briefly.
!!
Hmph, thats all youve got. You cant evenpare to a single finger of his. How can you be careful?
The young man scolded and then ordered, Have you contacted there yet? The next mission we give him will be the one that has been left unsolvable for twenty years.
Tell there that he will die after this.
After the man in ck left the inn, he went straight out of the city and rode his horse to a vige ten miles out of the city.
Ying is back? Youre so early today.
Brother Ying, this is a radish that I just picked at home. Its very juicy. Do you want to take it back and try it?
Brother Ah Ying, its getting cold. Why dont you put on some more clothes? Dont let the cold damage your bones.
From the moment he entered the vige, the vigers kept greeting him, from white-haired old men to yellow-haired children. Everyone who saw him had a smile on their faces, as if they were not frightened by his cold appearance.
Although the man in ck did not smile or speak, he would asionally nod in response. However, he would not ept anything the vigers gave him.
He walked all the way to the back of the vige. There was a small courtyard behind the entire vige. The man in ck walked over and unlocked the door, then went in and closed the door.
He had been staying in this vige for nearly two months. He had only stayed for one night when he passed by, but he did not expect to choose this ce to stay.
He sat down at the table and took out a bottle of wine.
Perhaps it was because it was directly pressed against his chest, even in such a cold day, the freshly warmed wine still had some temperature.
He slowly drank the wine. The strong wine burned down his throat with its unique spiciness, but it could not dispel the emptiness and coldness in his chest.
Mei Er, will I really not be able to see you again? No matter where you go, I wont be able to see you again?
His voice was extremely low, almost like a whisper. However, the room was empty, and no one responded to his words.
Ever since he had left the Qin vige, he had followed the mountain range from east to west. He had also been asking for information about a person along the way, but he had not found any clues.
He had chosen to settle down in this vige because there was a little girl who looked exactly the same as the person in his memory. It made him feel like he had returned to the past, but the surrounding environment reminded him again and again that it was a past life that he could never go back to.
Therefore, he stayed here and bought this courtyard that was far away from the crowd and was about to be abandoned, making it his temporary residence.
Every time he was out on a mission, he would return here immediately and quietly drink for the night before leaving again.
The vigers were so familiar with him because he had saved the vigers before.
In order to store enough supplies before winter, the men in the vige went up the mountain to hunt together. However, they were surrounded by a group of wolves who were also hunting. If the man in ck had not appeared in time, the group of men would have suffered heavy casualties.
Therefore, even though he had been cold and ignored everyone, the vigers enthusiasm for him did not diminish. As time passed, he would asionally give a little response, but it was only a nod.
The sky had unknowingly darkened, and the wine that the ck-clothed man had brought was almost finished. He originally wanted to go to sleep, but suddenly he heard a faint sound of a bird.
Mei Er!
The ck clothed mans eyes focused, his eyes revealing an expression of disbelief. That voice was something he had only heard in his dreams so many times, and now it came from the night. Could it be that she had heard his heart ande to find him?
After a muffled sound, the door opened, and the man in ck in the room had disappeared.
This vige wasnt like the Qin Vige, which was in the mountains. It was at the foot of the mountain. The small courtyard where the ck clothed man stayed was rtively closer to the mountain forest behind. Thus, he directly rushed into the back mountain from the courtyard. Even though the sound was quite loud, it didnt rm anyone.
In thete night, the forest was filled with ghostly shadows. Countless branches reached out to the man in ck like pairs of ghostly hands, pulling on his clothes and arms as if to prevent him from getting closer to the voice he heard.
The sound was near and far. The mans ears moved, trying to distinguish the direction of the sound. His senses had always been extremely sharp, but at this time, he could not clearly tell where the sound wasing from. He could only rush forward aimlessly.
When the man in ck was running, he suddenly lost his bnce and fell into a state of weightlessness.
Fortunately, he came to his senses in time and did a somersault in midair. A dark light shed from his wrist and the rope that had shot out was firmly hooked onto the trunk of a tree, stopping his falling momentum.
After the time it took to brew a cup of tea, the man climbed up from below and looked back down. He was actually standing on the edge of an unfathomably deep cliff below.
The ghostly voice had lured him here, and it was actually to make him fall off the cliff.
The man pressed on his wrist, and the ropes that were piled on the ground were all retracted into a leather bag on his wrist.
It was an exquisitely made sleeve dart. Its shape was exactly the same as the one on Mo Ruyues wrist, but there were some differences in size and its style was a bit more rough.
This time, the man listened more carefully to the sounds around him, but he could only hear the whistling mountain wind and the sound of branches swaying in the cold wind. Other than that, he could not hear anything else.
Is it an auditory hallucination, or is it a rustling sound?
He shook his head to make sure he wasnt hallucinating from drinking too much.
His alcohol tolerance was extremely good, and it was not an exaggeration to say that he would not get drunk even after a thousand sses. The alcohol that he had drunk during the day was no more effective than in water to him.
As he was in a state of near-madness when he was running, he did not distinguish the direction. However, his memory was extremely good, and he only needed to look at the position of the moon to know which direction he should go next.
At this time, he was already very far into the back of the mountain, and it was already night. The nocturnal animals in the mountain began toe out one after another. On his way back, he was targeted by countless fierce beasts.
The man was bold because of his skills. He was not afraid of this at all and only sped up the speed of descending the mountain.
The stench in the air was getting stronger and stronger. although the man ignored it, the beast that treated him as prey could not hold back any longer. It still got close to a dangerous level and was ready to pounce at any time.
The cold wind was still biting, but a strong wind with a fishy smell suddenly blew from behind.
Chapter 270 - 270 Giving Up On Struggling
270 Giving Up On Struggling
A ck panther that had perfectly blended into the night pounced over, its sharp ws and fangs gleaming with a cold light. Its cold eyes were filled with a thick aura of death as it stared at the back of the prey in front of it.
Just as its ws were about to grab the back of its prey, the ck panthers eyes suddenly froze, and then it fell silently, heavily hitting the ground.
The man heard a voice behind him and stopped. He turned around and looked at the ck panther lying on the ground. No one knew what he was thinking.
He had only used a strong anesthetic, so the ck panther was still in a deepa. However, if he left it there, it would soon be killed by other beasts.
The man didnt hesitate and immediately injected the antidote into the ck panther. However, he didnt leave. Instead, he stood beside the ck panther and waited quietly for it to wake up.
The beast that grew up in the deep mountains had a strong body. After the antidote, it quickly woke up. However, before it could get up, its neck was pressed by something, making it unable to break free even if it desperately iled its limbs and twisted its body.
The humans breath filled the ck panthers nostrils, causing it to be filled with confusion as it struggled.
There had been another human who had been so close to it before. His aura was clearly different from the human that was suppressing it now, but he gave it the same sense of familiarity.
Although he noticed that the ck panthers struggle was gradually weakening, the man who was suppressing it did not rx his strength. He would not rx his suppression until it hadpletely surrendered.
After a while, the ck panther hadpletely given up on struggling. Its tongue kept licking its mouth and nose, showing an extremely nervous look. It even turned over to reveal its soft belly to the man who was on top of it.
This was a gesture ofplete submission. The man knew that he could let go now.
Then, the man slowly moved his hand away, and the ck panther only put its ears to the top of its head. Its eyes were soft and nervous, but it did not show any attacking posture.
You should be d that you met the me from tonight.
The man suddenly said to the ck panther.
Even though he knew it couldnt understand, he still said it.
If it was any other time, he would never allow a creature that had the intention to kill him and had already started to attack him to be alive. However, the hallucination tonight was a rare opportunity for him to feel her again. It cracked his cold heart, and he let the ck panther go.
After the man took two steps back, the ck panther rolled over and stood up. Its belly was still pressed tightly against the ground, and its eyes were fixed on the man who had surrendered.
You can leave.
The man waved his hand, turned around, and left. Even if he had to leave his defenseless back to a ferocious beast, he was not afraid at all.
Even after the man had gone far away, the ck panther did not make any moves to attack. Instead, it waited until his scent hadpletely disappeared before it scuttled away and disappeared into the dark night.
When the man in ck returned to the small courtyard, he suddenly stopped at the entrance.
Did he discover something?
A person hiding on a roof in the distance whispered to hispanion.
Are you crazy? Arent you afraid hell hear you?
Hispanion quickly gestured, not daring to make a single sound.
They were already monitoring the man in ck at the limit of their vision, but they still couldnt guarantee that they wouldnt be noticed by him. And now, the idiot beside him actually dared to speak softly?
Only now did he realize that his partner was actually an idiot who was not afraid of death!
The man who spoke gave himself a light p in annoyance, but that was an expression he made because he was afraid of making another sound.
The two of them lowered their posture again and stared nervously at the man in ck in the distance. They watched him enter the courtyard and close the door, but they didnt seem to show any signs of abnormality.
Even so, the man who had already made a mistake once did not dare to speak to hispanion again. Instead, he forced himself to stay alert and continued to monitor the movements in the small courtyard in the distance.
The man in ck returned to his room. He did not light themp, but sat quietly by the bed with his back straight. He did not rx even a little because he had returned to his own territory.
Of course, he knew that someone had been following and monitoring him all this time. It was just that when he rushed over just now, he caught them off guard. His speed was too fast, so the people who were monitoring him could not react in time, let alone keep up with his speed.
However, those people also knew that he would not leave the big ck horse in the courtyard behind, so no matter what he did in the back mountain, he would return to this small courtyard. So after losing him, those people hade to this courtyard to look for possible clues.
The man yed with the ring on his thumb. The ants outside were nothing to him. He was more focused on the auditory hallucination that suddenly appeared tonight.
He wasnt sure if he had really heard anything or if he was hallucinating because of the alcohol. However, besides Mei Er, no one else knew about their secretmunication method.
If Mei Er really did appear, she would definitely show herself and make me fall off the cliff. But if its not her, then whats going on?
Although the man had always been calm and meticulous, he was a little confused when he suddenly encountered clues and circumstances rted to her.
After a night, the house in the small courtyard was empty, and the big ck horse in the courtyard was gone.
Before dawn, he had already left on his horse, ready to take on another mission.
That night, he understood one thing, and that was that he could not stop his search. Since there was a clue rted to her, he had to keep looking until he bled to thest drop of blood.
But before that, he had to leave as many clues about him as possible in this world. As long as she saw it, she would know that he was looking for her!
It was still the same inn and room from yesterday. This time, the luxuriously dressed man was waiting inside. He obviously didnt have enough patience to wait for someone. He had only sat in the room for a short while, but he couldnt help but tap his fingers on the table.
Give me the next mission,
The man in ck appeared in the room like a ghost and said to the young man directly.
Ying, dont you need to rest for three to four days between missions? Why couldnt he hold it in the next day? Youve already earned so much money that you wont be able to finish spending it in a few lifetimes. Why? Are you still short of money?
The young man seemed to be jokingly teasing him to hide the questioning look in his eyes.
No? Then Ill withdraw.
The man in ck turned around and left without hesitation. This action shocked the young man and he immediately jumped up and chased after him.
One autumn rain, one cold. After a few consecutive raindrops, the temperature hadpletely dropped.
Chapter 271 - 271 High Fever
271 High Fever
When he woke up early today, the outside was covered with a thinyer of white frost, as if it had snowed. However, it disappeared when the sun was about to rise into the sky.
Nie Yuansheng walked into the house in the middle of the courtyard with a bowl of steaming millet rice covered with freshly stir-fried wild vegetables and cured meat.
Mother, eat your rice first. I will braise the rest in the pot. At noon, you can eat it after heating it up a little. Im going up the mountain now.
The old woman lying on the bed propped herself up and said worriedly, Yuansheng, its not easy to walk in the mountains these days. Why dont you not go? Dont we still have some millet, mountain products, cured meat, and so on at home? Its enough for us to get through the winter.
Mother, its getting cold early this year. It looks like itll be very cold in winter. We have to prepare enough firewood and food. Otherwise, when the snow seals the mountain, the situation will be difficult.
Nie Yuansheng didnt want to leave his mother alone in the mountains, but winter wasing. He wanted to take advantage of the time to pick as many herbs as possible and hunt for some prey to exchange for money.
His mother had just undergone a major operation, and he had been busy taking care of her, so he had not been able to store enough supplies for the winter. Now, he could only make up for it as soon as possible.
But
The olddy wanted to persuade him again but was interrupted by Nie Yuansheng. Dont worry, Mother. I wont go deep into the mountains. Ill be back before dark.
After he finished speaking, he turned around and left the house. He took the basket, chopper, and a piece of yellow rice and flour cornbread that he had prepared on his back, and then hurriedly walked out of the house.
However, a few hourster, he regretted not listening to his mother and making the decision to go up the mountain.
Dont, donte over!
Nie Yuansheng used both his hands and feet to move backward. His eyes were staring straight ahead, and his mouth was subconsciously begging for mercy.
His bamboo basket was thrown not far away, and the herbs inside were scattered all over the ground. A huge furry paw stepped on his chopper, and then slowly approached him.
It was a huge white-fronted tiger. Its brown eyes were full of cold and brutal killing intent. Nie Yuansheng seemed to be able to smell the stinky hot air from its mouth, which represented the smell of death.
Who wouldve thought that the cold of winter would cause the tiger, which usually appeared during the day and at night, to appear in the day earlier than expected?
In such a deep mountain, even if he cried for help, no one would be able to hear him and arrive in time. It seemed that he would die in the tigers mouth today.
It was a pity that his mother had to endure the torture of the illness, but she was still unable to move. After his death, he did not know how she would live in the future.
When Nie Yuansheng saw that the tiger was about to pounce, he could only turn his head and close his eyes tightly, waiting for death toe.
However, the pain he had imagined did not appear. There was only a muffled sound beside him, as if something had hit his feet.
Nie Yuansheng mustered up the courage to open his eyes and coincidentally met the tigers eyes.
The tiger, who was still cruel and cold just now, was lying at his feet. It opened its bloody mouth and stuck out its tongue, but there was no sound. It was dead.
Not far away, a man in ck had appeared. He held a pair of strange weapons in his hands. There was a string of blood dripping from them, and a pool of blood had quickly formed under the tiger.
The man in ck seemed to be focused on the tiger and didnt even look at him. He staggered as he walked over and sat down beside the tigers body.
Nie Yuansheng looked at the man in cks actions in shock. It was only then that he realized that most of his clothes were extremely dark in color, as if they had been soaked through by something.
The man in ck pulled out a sharp dagger from his waist and gestured at the tigers back. He seemed to be looking for a suitable ce to cut it, nning to skin the tiger right there and then.
Nie Yuansheng wanted to remind him that if he wanted topletely peel off the tigers skin, it was better to cut from the ws. He had never seen anyone cut from the tigers back. Only those who had no intention of taking the tigers skin would do so.
However, the man seemed to have lost all his strength. He couldnt even hold the dagger in his hand, let alone cut the fur on the tigers back.
Nie Yuansheng noticed the man in cks strange behavior. He didnt care that his hands and feet were still sore and weak. He quickly crawled to his side and asked, Benefactor, whats wrong? Are you alright?
When he reached the mans side, Nie Yuansheng noticed that his body was also emitting a strong smell of blood. It turned out that his clothes were actually soaked in blood. It was only because he was wearing ck clothes that Nie Yuansheng could not see it at first.
Bones, medicine
The man in ck suddenly opened his mouth and said a few words before he fainted on the tigers corpse.
Nie Yuansheng touched his forehead and realized that his body temperature was frighteningly high.
From what the man said, he wanted to take the tigers bones to make medicine. However, when he caught the tiger, he had lost too much blood and had a high fever. Even if he sessfully killed the tiger, he would not be able to take out the bones.
No matter what, this ck-clothed man was his savior. Nie Yuansheng was lucky to have escaped death, so he naturally couldnt sit by and do nothing.
Leaving such a big tiger in the mountains would only benefit the other beasts. Although it was a pity, there was no other way.
Fortunately, Nie Yuansheng had been a butcher for a few years. He first moved the man in ck to the side and sat down against a tree. Then, he used the mans short knife topletely peel off the tigers skin and separate the tiger meat and bones.
He picked up his basket and put the tigers bones and fur into it. He could only abandon the mountain of meat next to him. After all, he had to bring a living person out of the mountain and could not take more things.
He tied the basket tightly with a hemp rope and tied the other end of the rope to his waist. He dragged the basket on the ground. Then, Nie Yuansheng half-supported and half-dragged the unconscious man up and moved him down the mountain with great effort.
He didnt know how much time had passed since he left the mountain and finally saw the small mountain vige hidden by the trees. It was alreadyte, and smoke began to rise from the chimneys of every household.
Oh no, Mother must be worried sick after seeing that I havent returned for so long.
Nie Yuansheng wanted to speed up, but the man he was supporting had not woken up since he fell unconscious. Now that he was leaning heavily on Nie Yuansheng, the speed at which he was dragging him became slower and slower.
Yuansheng, is the young man you brought back still not awake? If his fever continues like this, its very easy for him to get into trouble.
The old woman asked worriedly as she allowed her son to wipe her face and hands and feet.
Mother, I was thinking, why dont we send him to the Qin Vige tonight? We cant treat our benefactors injuries. In all the viges in this area, only Lady Qin can save his life.
Although Nie Yuansheng did not want to travel in the cold wind in the middle of the night, the ck-clothed mans condition was not good. He could not let his benefactor die because of his injuries.
Chapter 272 - 272 The Man in Black
272 The Man in ck
When he came back at night, he really scared his mother. Not only because he came back toote, but also because he had brought back an unconscious man covered in blood.
It was not easy for him to make his mother believe that the blood on his body belonged to the man in ck. It could be seen how badly injured his benefactor was for him to lose so much blood.
Go. Our benefactor saved you. We cant just watch him die, but you must be careful!
Although the old woman was very worried and reluctant, she would not stop her son in this situation.
!!
Nie Yuansheng put on his cart and covered it with a thickyer of bedding to prevent the man from catching a cold while he was unconscious.
As for his own mother, he could only be thick-skinned and ask the neighbors for help to take care of her. Of course, he did not ask for nothing. Nie Yuansheng gritted his teeth and grabbed two of his old hens as thanks.
He also took the tiger skin and bones that he had brought back with great difficulty. Because before his benefactor fainted, he had mentioned the tiger bones and medicine. He must have nned to use the tiger bones as medicine, so he took the things with him. Maybe Lady Qin could use them when the time came.
As for the tiger skin, it was worth a lot of money. Since the tiger was beaten by his benefactor, everything should belong to him. It should be more than enough to pay for his medical expenses with the tiger skin.
Nie Yuansheng had never thought of leaving two tiger bones for himself to sell. After all, he had also thrown an entire basket of herbs and mountain products to carry other peoples things.
However, his benefactors life was the most important thing right now. After all, without his benefactor, he, Nie Yuansheng, would have long been fed to the tiger.
After everything was prepared, Nie Yuansheng looked at his mother, who was lying on the bed, with reluctance. He once again urged the neighbors who came to help, then lit the torch and drove the ox-cart, hurriedly heading towards Qin Vige.
In recent days, Mo Ruyue had already stored arge amount of winter supplies with the help of the wolves. As the weather got colder, she no longer went into the mountains frequently. She only went to the treasure valley asionally to see if the wolves had returned.
Tomorrow was the day to go to Huichun Hall for a consultation. Mo Ruyue checked her medicine box again as usual and replenished all the medicinal herbs and potions she had used.
The five babies had already taken a bath and were ready to sleep. The sound of them ying came from inside the house. Although the cold wind was whistling and it was very cold that night, the small courtyard was exceptionally warm.
A series of urgent knocks on the door broke the silence of the night, and the dogs in the vige began to bark.
Mo Ruyue had long heard the sound of wheelsing this way, so before the car stopped at the door, she started to walk toward the courtyard gate.
She opened the door a little when someone knocked on it.
After seeing the face outside the door, Mo Ruyue put away her defensive posture and opened the door even wider.
Lady Qin, Im really sorry to have disturbed you sote at night. I really want to ask you to save my benefactor!
Nie Yuansheng stood outside the door and said anxiously.
He didnt dare to be distracted while driving the carriage, so he didnt pay attention to the situation of the man in ck at all times. The wind outside was strong, so he couldnt hear his breathing at all. It wasnt until the car stopped that he casually checked, only to find that his benefactor seemed to be no longer breathing.
Nie Yuansheng was extremely shocked. He did not expect that after he had worked so hard to bring his benefactor here, he would have already lost his life.
Mo Ruyue followed his gaze and looked at the ox cart. The nket was bulging as if it was wrapping someone.
Whats wrong with your benefactor? Speak slowly.
Mo Ruyue was originally the most afraid of trouble, but after being in Huichun Hall for a long time, she had slowly gotten used to the situation where trouble could appear at any time.
Since Nie Yuansheng came to ask for help on such a cold night, his benefactor must have suffered a serious injury.
Even from a distance, she could smell the strong smell of blood. Judging from the amount of blood lost, if the blood transfusion was not done as soon as possible, she was afraid that he would not be able to be saved.
She asked as she walked toward the ox-cart.
Nie Yuansheng followed behind and recounted what had happened in the afternoon. While he was recounting, Mo Ruyue also saw the face of the person lying on the ox cart.
Why is it him?
Mo Ruyue said in surprise.
This man in ck was the person she had saved before. At that time, he was poisoned and came to her door to seek treatment, but she had refused to treat him.
She didnt expect to see him again a few monthster, and this time he was sent to her for medical treatment in aa.
They had met twice, but she had wanted to save his life. What kind of strange fate was this?
Lady Qin, you know my benefactor?
Nie Yuansheng, who was standing next to Mo Ruyue, also heard Mo Ruyues mumbling. He couldnt help but ask in surprise.
Help me carry him into the courtyard first. The wind is strong here, its not a ce to save people.
Mo Ruyue didnt answer the question and changed the topic.
Lady Qin, my benefactor is already dead.
Nie Yuansheng thought that Mo Ruyue had not noticed, so he reminded her.
Help me carry him in first. If you dawdle any longer, hell really die.
Mo Ruyue said impatiently.
She didnt know why she suddenly felt a sense of panic and fear, just like the feeling she had felt before thest time she went on a mission with Gu Ying.
She growled so softly that Nie Yuansheng also came back to his senses and repeatedly agreed. He carried the ck-clothed man into the courtyard and sent him to thest empty room ording to Mo Ruyues instructions.
When the babies in the house heard themotion outside, they all leaned against the window and looked out. Although they didnt know who the person being carried in was, they felt an inexplicable tension in the atmosphere.
Big Brother, who is that person?
The fourth baby, Si Bao, was now sleeping in the same room as his eldest brother, Da Bao. When he saw this scene, he could not help but lean closer to him and ask in a trembling voice.
I dont know. He seems to be here to ask for Mothers help. I think Ive seen that uncle somewhere before.
Although Da Bao did not see the mans face clearly, he had a strange sense of familiarity with him.
The man in ck was ced on the bed. Although the house was empty, someone cleaned it every day, so there was no moldy or damp smell in it. Instead, it was very dry, which was suitable for him to recuperate.
Lady Qin, before my benefactor fell unconscious, he told me about the tiger bone and medicine. I thought that he might want to use the tiger bone to make medicine, so I brought the tiger bone.
Nie Yuansheng said from the side, but he realized that Mo Ruyue didnt seem to hear what he said at all. Her attention was all on his benefactor and she was carefully checking his condition.
He was afraid that his interruption would disturb Lady Qins inspection, so he quietly walked out of the door to bring in the basket on the ox cart and led the ox cart into the courtyard.
Mo Ruyue opened the ck-clothed manspels and found that there were many new scars and scars on his body. It was obvious that after being treated by her, he was still living a life of walking on the line between life and death.
...
Chapter 273 - 273 Saving Someone
273 Saving Someone
This time, the mans injury was even more serious. The knife wound extended from his right shoulder to the left side of his waist. The knife was meant to cut him in half.
This was not the only injury on his body. His back, arms, legs, and the tearing wounds left by the hook rope.
Those wounds had burn marks, which should have been used to stop the bleeding, but the effect was obviously not very good.
It looked like he had been hung up by a hook rope before, but it was unknown how he had managed to break free. However, looking at the torn wound, the process must have been extremely tragic.
!!
When Mo Ruyue noticed that Nie Yuansheng had left, she immediately injected a cardiac stimnt into the ck-clothed man.
He was already on the verge of death and was in urgent need of CPR. However, the hideous knife wound on his chest made Mo Ruyue unable to do anything. She could only use a cardiac stimnt to induce CPR on him.
This needle had been infused with the spiritual spring water from the medium, so it was a hundred times more effective than the ordinary heart-strengthening needle. In addition, the ck-shirted mans original physical fitness was very strong, so the effect was immediate.
His breathing, which had been on the verge of death, slowly stabilized, and his heartbeat returned to normal. It was beating very fast, and she finally pulled back the man in ck, who was half-dead.
At this moment, Nie Yuansheng had also returned to the house with his basket. When he saw that his dead benefactor was alive again, he was overjoyed and revealed a big smile.
Although Mo Ruyue didnt respond to Nie Yuansheng just now, she heard everything he said. She turned to look at Nie Yuansheng and then at the basket in his hand and said, Give me a piece of tiger bone. I know what medicine he wants to make.
The tiger bone had the effect of warming, dispelling cold, dispelling wind, relieving pain, and calming and pain-relieving. This man probably wanted to use the tiger bone as medicine to relieve pain. This effect was much faster and more effective than the general herbs that reduced swelling and pain.
In addition, after the tiger bone was burned and ground, it could also be used to treat burns caused by soup and fire. It should also be used to treat those burn wounds.
It seemed like the ck-clothed man was extremely confident in his own abilities. Otherwise, he would not have rashly entered the mountains to hunt for the tigers bones when he was so seriously injured. However, he had miscalcted one thing and did not expect to faint from exhaustion. If he had not met Nie Yuansheng, he would probably be dead by now.
Nie Yuansheng agreed and took out a piece of tiger bone from the basket. It was a rib near the chest.
When Mo Ruyue took the tiger bone, he rubbed his hands again and said hesitantly, Lady Qin, at that time, in order to bring my benefactor down the mountain, I could only divide the tiger he beat up, peel off the tiger skin, and remove the tiger bones.
These are all my benefactors things. In addition to the medicine for him, theres also money for his treatment and medical expenses. Do you think these should be enough?
Yes, its enough.
Mo Ruyue replied briefly, her eyes fixed on the ck-clothed man. What he needed now was surgery to suture up his wound, and arge amount of blood transfusion.
Fortunately, she had obtained arge amount of blood some time ago. Otherwise, in todays situation, even if she wanted to save him, she would not be able to.
Lady Qin, Ive also umted some leather goods. I originally wanted to sell them to pay back some of your surgery fees, but I havent had the time to find a leather merchant. Today, Ive also brought them along. If you dont mind, you can ept them.
This was what he had thought about when he was at home. Since he was going to bring his benefactor to Lady Qin to save his life, he would also bring the leather goods along. No matter if she epted it or not, the thought would always be there.
Mo Ruyue originally wanted to refuse, but on second thought, if she epted it, then that heavy favor might be less for Nie Yuansheng.
Therefore, she nodded and said, Leather goods are just right. I was just thinking of making some leather jackets for my babies. But lets put this aside for now, Im going to perform the surgery for your benefactor.
Yes, yes. Look at me. I forgot which side is more important. Why are we talking about this at this time? Its dying you from saving people.
Nie Yuansheng immediately came back to his senses and apologized repeatedly before retreating out of the house.
He walked to the yard, ready to leave after unloading the leather. After all, his old mother was alone at home. Although he had asked the neighbors to take care of her, they were not rtives, so they would not do their best. He was really worried.
But it wasnt good to leave without saying goodbye. Just as he was in a dilemma, Mo Ruyue suddenly came out of the room.
Big Brother Nie, you should stay here tonight. Its dark and the roads are slippery, and its not safe to see wild beasts in the mountains. Ill get Da Bao to take you to Aunt Lius house next door for a night. If you want to leave, you should wait until tomorrow.
She only came out after hanging the blood bottle on the man in ck. She also thought about whether Nie Yuansheng would stay or not, so she came out to warn him.
Da Bao had already put on his clothes at this time, just in case his mother needed help in any way. As expected, something happened.
He didnt need Mo Ruyues call and took the initiative to walk out of the house. He also conveniently carried antern. It was obvious that he had long been prepared.
Mother, Ill go see Uncle Nie off then.
Nie Yuansheng was even more embarrassed when he heard that. He quickly waved his hand and said, No, no, theres no need. Ill just find a leeward ce in this courtyard to stay for the night. Dont trouble others and dont torment the child.
Youd better go with him. Im in a hurry to perform surgery, so Ill talk to youter.
Mo Ruyue turned around and went back into the house after he finished speaking. He didnt even listen to Nie Yuansheng.
Uncle Nie, you shoulde with me. Mother wont change her mind easily once shes decided on something. The earlier we go, the earlier you can rest.
Da Bao tried to persuade her. Although his mothers attitude was cold, he knew that she was thinking about Uncle Nies safety.
Mothers kindness was only something she didnt want to admit.
The Qin and Liu families were very close to each other. Da Bao had already returned before Mo Ruyue had finished her surgery preparations.
He knew that his mother was saving people in the room, and he also knew that the operation needed a quiet and clean environment, so he did not push the door open to enter the house. Instead, he said through the door, Mother, Uncle Nie has already settled down at Grandma Lius house. She told you to rest assured.
Alright, go back andfort your younger siblings, then quickly go to sleep. Mother doesnt need your help here. You guys sleeping well will be a great help to me.
After Mo Ruyue finished speaking, he heard Da Baos response. Then, the sound of his footsteps gradually faded away. After the creak of the door, the entire courtyard returned to silence.
The children went back to sleep, and Mo Ruyue was relieved. After she bolted the door of the house, she brought the ck-clothed man into the medium.
The environment in the room couldnt bepared to the medical room in the interspace, so if the conditions were right, Mo Ruyues first choice was to enter the interspace to perform the surgery, which was safer and faster.
Last time, she had put the man under anesthesia and brought him into her interspace. It was the same this time, but the operation this time was longer.
Chapter 274 - 274 Father?
274 Father?
With the help of the spaces time elerator, Mo Ruyue disappeared with the ck-clothed man and reappeared in the room almost as soon as they disappeared. By this time, the man had already finished his operation and even passed the 48-hour observation period after the operation.
However, due to the effect of the anesthetic, he had been in aa during this time and did not wake up.
The ck clothed man had already changed into clean and loose clothes. This wasnt the first time Mo Ruyue had helped him change his clothes, so she did it with ease.
However, she had used the spare fabric at home to sew the clothes ording to the garment-making guide in the interspace. After all, she was a widow who was living with five babies. It was impossible for her to have mens clothes at home.
!!
As for herte husband Qin Mings belongings, after the news of his death came back, only a set of clothes was left as a cenotaph, the rest had been burned.
Without the help of the time elerator and the effect of the anesthetic gradually fading, the man in ck gradually woke up from hisa.
Before his body waspletely awake, his consciousness was one step ahead of him, and a burst of childrensughter rushed into his ears.
The sound was very close to him. Could it be that the children in the vige had climbed over the wall and entered his yard?
The man in ck opened his eyes and tried to sit up, but the pain all over his body dissipated all the strength he had umted, and hey back on the pillow.
It was only then that he noticed that he was not in his own room. Although there were a lot of things piled up in the room, they were all arranged in an orderly manner and did not appear to be messy. It was obvious that this was an empty room used to ce misceneous items.
There was the sound of children running around in the yard. It was obvious that it was not a child outside. They seemed to know that there was a patient in the house, so they all lowered their voices andughed. However, the ck-shirted mans five senses were too sharp. Even such a soft voice was like it was ringing in his ears.
He remembered the man he saw before he fainted. Perhaps he was the one who brought him down the mountain and settled him in his home. Those children should be his children.
While he was thinking, the door creaked open and a figure came in with a bowl. When she saw his gaze, he said, Youre awake. Just in time. Take your medicine.
As she walked closer to the bed, the man in ck also saw her face clearly and could not help but be stunned.
Lady Qin, why are you here?
Why cant it be me?
Mo Ruyue raised an eyebrow and asked in return.
It seems that I owe you another life.
The man in ck said lightly.
Lady Qin had said before that she didnt want to see him again and didnt want him to repay her kindness. So, when he came to give away his wealth, he ced it high on the roof beam. Besides Lady Qin, no one else would find out.
Now, when he was seriously injured and on the verge of death again, he was still sent to her side.
Drink your medicine. Do you still need me to feed you?
Mo Ruyue looked at the man in front of her. It was her first time seeing his face clearly under such bright light. Although there was plenty of light in the space before, she was busy with the operation and had no time to care about other things, so she did not deliberately look at his face.
She still remembered that the mans facial features were particrly deep and firm under the oilmp. Now that she took a closer look, he was indeed a man with outstanding looks.
Although Mo Ruyues tone was a little harsh, the ck-shirted man didnt mind. It wasnt the first time the two hade into contact, and her personality had always been like this.
In addition to her sensitivity and conflict with his identity, it was not easy for her to save him again. Of course, he would not be calctive about her attitude.
It was strange that he would feel pain all over his body whenever he moved. Before he was treated, he could rush into the mountains to hunt tigers and extract their bones to make medicine. Why did he not have the strength to get up after being treated?
Mo Ruyue said that he wanted the ck-clothed man to drink the medicine himself, but he was already sitting by his bed. She scooped a spoonful of medicine, blew on it to cool it down, and then brought it to his mouth.
Ill take care of it myself.
The man had only said three words before he was interrupted by her.
There are two big holes in your shoulder. I just stitched them up. If you move around and open the wounds, you can suture them yourself.
Her words were impolite, and she did not move the spoon from the mans mouth.
As expected, she had a sharp mouth but a soft heart. Her words were always twisted with her actions.
The man didnt argue with her and drank the medicine.
The two of them fed one and drank the other. They cooperated well and quickly finished the bowl of medicine.
Ill change the medicine for you three times a day. After that, when you can move your arm, you can do it yourself.
Mo Ruyue didnt want the man to stay in her house forever. He belonged to that dark world, so he shouldnt bring anything from that world out. If it implicated her baby, she definitely wouldnt let him off.
The man was clearly aware of this, so he didnt think that Mo Ruyues words and actions were too cold.
In fact, if it were him, he would not even consider saving him again.
When Mo Ruyue entered the door, she only had a bowl of soup in her hand. As for the medicine for external application, it was prepared by Da Bao outside.
The sound of footsteps came and stopped at the door. Da Baos voice was heard, Mother, the medicine for external application is ready.
Come in,
As Mo Ruyue responded, Da Bao came in with a bowl. When he saw the face of the man in ck, his eyes suddenly widened and he called out in surprise, Father!
Father?
Mo Ruyue and the ck-shirted man looked at each other in confusion.
You are Qin Ming? Mo Ruyue asked first.
Who is Qin Ming? The man in ck asked.
Da Bao was running over excitedly, almost throwing the bowl of medicine in his hand. He was stunned when he heard the man in cks words.
He carefully looked at the man in ck from head to toe again. That face clearly looked like his fathers. Even if he had left home many years ago and never returned, he would never have remembered it wrong.
But why didnt his father admit it?
Da Bao, are you sure hes your father? Mo Ruyue asked Da Bao.
The original owner of her body had never seen Qin Ming since the day she married him, so she naturally didnt know what he looked like. But when Qin Ming left home, Da Bao was already seven years old, so it was impossible for him to not remember what his own father looked like.
Hes
Da Bao wanted to give a definite answer, but he hesitated when his mother asked.
...
At first nce, this man looked exactly like her father, but now that he looked carefully, there were still some differences.
Although the man in ck was lying down, he seemed to be longer than his father. His eyes were cold, as if there was no warmth in them. Although his father was usually very serious, he could asionally see a smile.
Chapter 275 - 275 Tiger’s Skin
275 Tigers Skin
Also, his father had a prickly beard on his face. This mans face was clean, and there was a small ck mole under the left corner of his eye.
The more he looked, the more he found some small differences. But one thing was certain, he was not his father, definitely not!
Mother, Ive mistaken him for someone else. Im sorry.
Da Baos voice became low. After apologizing to Mo Ruyue, he bowed to the man in ck, put down the bowl of medicine in his hand, turned around, and ran out.
!!
Mo Ruyue looked at Da Baos back, and a touch of heartache shed across her eyes.
Lady Qin, my medicine.
The ck clothed mans words made Mo Ruyuee back to her senses. His face was still indifferent, as if the scene just now couldnt move him at all.
If it was the Mo Ruyue from her previous life, perhaps she would have the same reaction. However, after spending so much time with the five babies in this life, she could no longer be indifferent to their affairs.
Mo Ruyue collected her thoughts and began to change the ck-shirted mans medicine. She would send him away as soon as he was cured. This was not a ce that people like him should stay for long.
After changing the dressing, Mo Ruyue pointed to the basket on the side of the bed and said, This is what the person who sent you here left behind. He said that you hunted the tiger. In order to save you, he could only bring the tigers skin and bones. Other than the two ribs used for your medicine, everything else is here.
When your injuries are better and you can move, leave immediately and nevere back.
In fact, Mo Ruyue wanted to kick him out right now. Thest time she saved him, wasnt there a pretty good cave? Since he was out of danger now, she would arrange for him to recuperate there. In short, the further away from the babies, the better.
I dont need those. Ill leave two tiger bones for you and give the rest to him or you. You can do whatever you want with them. The man in ck shook his head.
He had hunted the tiger only to obtain the bone to make medicine, not for the few taels of silver.
Ill keep the tiger skin, and the tiger bones will be given to that person. His mother is weak and needs some money to buy some good supplements.
Mo Ruyue didnt stand on ceremony with him. In any case, to this kind of person who lived on the edge of a knife and licked blood, money was easier than anything else. Even if a whole tiger could be sold for hundreds or thousands of taels of silver, it was still a small amount of money to him, let alone money from the tiger skin and bones.
The man in ck was silent. No matter how Mo Ruyue dealt with these things, he had no opinion.
Mo Ruyue took the empty bowl and the basket and left. She had to give these tiger bones to Nie Yuansheng before he left.
Originally, Nie Yuansheng had nned to rush home before dawn, but when he saw that there was only an old couple in the Liu family, he couldnt bear to let them do the work slowly.
He didnt have any money on him, so he just wanted to help the Liu family do some work to pay for the amodation fee.
He got up early in the morning and started to work. He filled the water tank, split the firewood, and cleaned the yard. He even fixed the cracks on the walls of the house. Only then did he bid farewell to the Liu couple.
When Mo Ruyue carried the basket and went out, Nie Yuansheng happened to be at the gate, ready to lead the ox-cart out.
Big Brother Nie, youre preparing to leave, right? Just in time, Ill give this to you.
Mo Ruyue walked over and directly handed a basket of tiger bones to Nie Yuansheng.
This, Lady Qin, what are you doing? Wasnt this the benefactors? I cant take it!
Nie Yuansheng quickly waved his hand and refused. He didnt dare to covet things that didnt belong to him.
He said that he only wanted to use the tigers bones to make medicine. He didnt want anything else. I took the tigers skin. If you dont want the tigers bones, you can just throw them away.
Mo Ruyue didnt have any intention of keeping the tiger bones. If she wanted them, she could go into the mountains and hunt them herself. However, these tiger bones were very useful to Nie Yuansheng. Whether it was to make medicine for his mother or to sell them to buy tonics for her to recuperate, they were all great benefits.
How can I throw this away? I cant!
Nie Yuansheng was shocked. He knew that the tiger bone was an extremely valuable medicinal herb. This basket could be sold for a few hundred taels of silver. How could he just throw it away?
Seeing that Mo Ruyue really didnt have any intention of keeping it for herself, Nie Yuansheng nced at the room where the ck-clothed man was resting.
Dont look at him, its the same if you ask him. I see that youre in a hurry to go home, so lets leave it at that.
Since Mo Ruyue had already said so, Nie Yuansheng could only give up. However, he still felt uneasy about obtaining such an unexpected fortune for no reason.
If you really feel apologetic, go back and be filial to your mother. It wont be in vain for you to have this fate with her.
In the end, Nie Yuansheng listened to Mo Ruyues advice and left with a basket of tiger bones.
The man in ck heard the conversation between the two people outside the room and shook his head almost imperceptibly.
No, why did he feel a strange sense of familiarity with Lady Qin?
She wasnt Mei Er. Although her personality was somewhat simr to Mei Ers at times, his Mei Er wouldnt look at anyone else other than him, let alone take care of a child and save people.
She was a natural killer, and he was the only one she had saved with her hands.
They were obviously twopletely different people. He must have had an illusion due to his high fever from his injury, thats why he felt that Lady Qin was so familiar.
He closed his eyes and tried his best to regte the cirction of his inner breath to help himself recover faster.
As long as he could move, he should leave.
Second Brother, dont you think that Eldest Brother seems to be very unhappy?
San Bao moved closer to Er Bao and whispered in his ear. He peeked at Da Bao as he spoke, as if he was afraid that Da Bao would hear him.
Eldest Brother has always had that face. How many times have you seen him smile?
Er Bao fondled the tiger skin in his hand lovingly. His mother had just brought it over and said that she was going to make a pair of tiger skin knee pads and gloves for each of them.
The tiger wasnt small, but it wasnt enough to be made into leather jackets for the five of them.
His mother had said that after the knee pads and gloves were done, she would see how much skin was left. Perhaps she could make a few waist-warming ones.
This was tiger skin! It was even warmer than deerskin, and it was even more impressive!
His mind was focused on this piece of tiger skin, so he didnt pay much attention to San Baos words.
Its true, Second Brother. Didnt Eldest Brother go to the opposite house to deliver medicine to the uncle? I vaguely heard him call out father, but when I came out of the room to take a look, he had already entered the room.
When Eldest Brother came out, he seemed to have lost his soul. I asked him what happened but he didnt say anything. When I asked again, he red at me. Its quite scary.
San Bao quickly exined, then poked Er Bao with his finger, Second Brother, why dont you go and ask? Youre about the same age as Eldest Brother, and youre smart. Youre better at talking than me, so what if you can get something out of him?
Er Bao raised his head and nced at San Bao with a faint smile, Third brother, why do I feel that ever since you entered the private school, youve be more scheming? Youre afraid of Big Brother, but Im not? If you want to ask, you can ask yourself. Im not going.
...
Even though San Baos thoughts had been seen through by his second brother, he could only chuckle and scratch the back of his head.
He was also worried about his big brother. Although his big brother never had a smile on his face before, this time was different.
Chapter 276 - 276 He’s No Longer Here
276 Hes No Longer Here
Big Brother looked like he had a lot on his mind. It wasnt as simple as being unhappy. It would be better to ask.
You two have been mumbling over there for a long time, what are you talking about?
Mo Ruyues voice suddenly came from behind. It didnt scare the second and third brothers, but it gave Da Bao a shock.
He turned his head and looked over. There was still a trace of panic in his eyes that he couldnt hide, which was immediately caught by Mo Ruyue.
She sighed in her heart. It seemed like she needed to have a good chat with Da Bao.
But before that, she had to deal with the other four babies first.
Mother, this tiger skin is really beautiful. Are you really going to make those things for us? But I think if we sell them, we can at least earn a few hundred taels of silver!
Er Bao was just thinking about warm and awe-inspiring gloves, warm waist, and knee pads, but now there was only the white silver in his eyes. Mo Ruyue could almost see a circle of silver dancing in his eyes.
Sure enough, he was someone who aspired to be the richest merchant in the future. Now, he had to first estimate the value of everything he saw. However, it was not to the point where his eyes would open at the sight of money. It all depended on what kind of path he would take.
Youre helping Da Bao with the ounts now, dont you have enough money at home? In the future, if we catch any more tigers, Mother will let you personally sell them. As for this time, its better to make them to keep out the cold first.
Er Bao also nodded repeatedly after Mo Ruyue said this.
Alright, Mother is very capable. Previously, I had fought a giant tiger alone. However, at that time, I sold it directly to Guani tower, so I earned a lot less.
Mother promised me that the next time theres a tiger, let me try it out. I guarantee that it will sell for an extremely good price.
Er Bao was easily dismissed.
Mo Ruyue looked at San Bao again. Before she could say anything, San Bao got up and ran out of the room. Mother, Si Bao said that we have a patient in our house and he needs to nourish his body. He and Tang Tang are discussing what kind of medicinal cuisine should be made. Ill go and take a look too, just in case he needs my help.
As he said that, he had already run far away.
Mo Ruyue shook her head. She had heard what Third Brother had said just now. Even he could see that something was wrong with Da Bao. It seemed that Eldest Brother had been really shocked just now.
Da Bao,e here. I need your help.
Mo Ruyue beckoned to Da Bao. He must not want his emotions to affect his younger siblings, so he was here silently feeling sad. She would fulfill his wish and take him outside for questioning.
Da Bao walked over and silently followed behind Mo Ruyue. He knew what his mother wanted to ask him, but he didnt know how to say it.
In fact, he didnt even have the desire to speak.
He followed Mo Ruyue out of the courtyard before they stopped.
Mo Ruyue looked at Da Bao, who had his head lowered, and before he could speak, she reached out and gently rubbed his head.
Ive never seen your father before, so I dont know what he looks like. Mo Ruyue said.
If I knew they looked so simr, I wouldnt have let him into my housest night. Do you know why?
She looked at the boy who had his head down the whole time. He was originally just listening to her silently, but when he heard this question, he didnt raise his head and only shook it slightly.
In your hearts, hes no longer here. Perhaps you still have a glimmer of hope that hell return one day. Its just that this person suddenly appeared and gave you a huge surprise, but when you realized that he wasnt the person you missed so much, that kind of despair made you really believe that he really wouldnte back, right?
Mo Ruyue knew that what she was saying was very cruel. It was equivalent to tearing open the scar that Da Bao clearly knew but was unwilling to admit.
However, she still had to say that the only good thing was that the other babies had not seen his appearance yet, so they would not be as shocked as Da Bao.
Mother, Im just I
Da Bao raised his head, his eyes filled with pain and confusion.
When the bad news came, he did not believe it. Every day and every month, he hoped that his father would suddenly appear at the door of the house and stop his stepmother from abusing them.
However, after being disappointed again and again, he began to slowly ept the fact that his father was no longer around. He began to understand that he was the only one who his younger siblings could rely on in the future.
Later, his mothers personality changed, and she gradually valued and doted on them. It also made him gradually bury those painful memories deeply, until today.
When he saw that familiar face again and was being stared at by that strange gaze, thest corner of his memory copsed. This was the real reason why he couldnt ept it.
Father, he would never look at him like that!
Mo Ruyue had been an orphan since she was young and had never experienced the love of her parents, so she could not fully understand Da Baos feelings at this time. However, she could feel the entanglement and pain in his heart at this time.
Although the five babies were not her biological children, they had been together for more than half a year and she gradually understood what it was like to be a mother.
She quietly pulled Da Bao into her arms, and for the first time, he let her hold him without resistance, appearing particrly obedient.
Mother, dont tell this matter to the younger siblings.
Da Bao said hesitantly.
He had already suffered a great shock when he saw this scene. If his younger brothers and sisters saw it as well, how sad would they be?
Dont worry, that person will leave soon and wont appear again.
Mo Ruyue was even more determined to make the ck-clothed man leave quickly.
In the past, it was because of his identity and background. Now, it was because of his appearance.
Out of the five babies, Tang Tang had probably never seen her biological fathers face before. Si Bao, on the other hand, was probably too young to have any impression of him.
The problem now was Er Bao and San Bao. They should still have some impression of Qin Ming. In addition, boys were born to worship their fathers, and Qin Ming had even died for the country after joining the army. In their hearts, he must be a great hero.
Since that was the case, they would not let the man in ck mess up their thoughts.
Da Bao nodded silently. After being guided by Mo Ruyue to speak his mind andforted, he quickly calmed down and returned to his usual state.
Mo Ruyue finally felt relieved. Da Bao was already a mature child, so she probably wouldnt worry too much about him.
Next, she went to the Liu familys house next door. She had asked Da Bao to bring Nie Yuansheng over to stay the night so rashly, so she had to go and thank them personally.
Lady Qin, this isnt a big deal, why did youe personally?
Aunty Liu said with a smile, then pulled her hand and led her into the house.
It was tootest night, and I didnt have any spare rooms, so I had to trouble you two.
...
Chapter 277 - 277 The Garment Factory
277 The Garment Factory
Mo Ruyue was on very good terms with the Liu family now, so she used a very natural and respectful tone when she spoke.
Aiya, who doesnt need help at all times? Besides, that Nie Yuansheng is also a filial son. Back then, he also came to beg you again and again for his mothers matter. This time, he came overnight for his benefactor. Tell me, how dangerous was that?
Aunt Liu and Mo Ruyue started to talk and praised Nie Yuansheng again.
By the way, Im here to help Nie Yuansheng pass something to you.
!!
Mo Ruyue said as she handed over a few tiger bones.
What kind of bone is this? It doesnt look like a cow bone, but why is it so big?
Aunt Liu was stunned for a moment. Although she didnt recognize what it was, Mo Ruyues gift had always been good.
Aunt Liu, this is the tiger bone. Nie Yuansheng asked me to give it to you. Just treat it as a lodging fee.
Mo Ruyue didnt expect Nie Yuansheng to do this either. These tiger bones could be sold for at least a few dozen taels of silver. For Nie Yuansheng, who wasnt that rich, it was still arge sum.
However, the tiger bones she gave Nie Yuansheng were as many as a basket. If he sold all of them, it would be enough for him and his mother to livefortably for the rest of their lives.
Tiger bones?
Aunt Liu was stunned.
She knew that this was a good thing. If she took it to the medicine shop in town to sell, she could sell it for a lot of money.
Besides, the tiger bone wine was also very nourishing. If she and the old man drank a little every day, it could also achieve the effect of strengthening the body and might even prolong life.
Yes, Aunt Liu, just take it. I still have to go back to see the patient at home, so I cant talk to you anymore.
Mo Ruyue stuffed the tiger bone into Aunt Lius hands and turned to walk out of the door. She didnt expect that after taking a few steps, Aunt Liu would chase after her.
Lady zqin, this thing is too precious. Please help me return it to Brother Nie. Even if you have to pay for the amodation, you dont have to use such an expensive thing. I, I really cant afford it.
Although Aunt Liu knew that the tiger bone was a good thing, she was not a person who liked to take advantage of others. Moreover, Nie Yuansheng had already done a lot of housework for her family before he left, so it was enough to pay for the amodation fee.
Mo Ruyue didnt expect that she couldnt give out good things even if she wanted to. She couldnt help but feel a little torn betweenughter and tears. If it were any other person in the vige, they would probably have fought over it.
However, there was no reason to take back something that had been given away, so Mo Ruyue just waved her hand and said, Aunt Liu, Im only responsible for passing it to you. If you dont want it, then you can return it yourself. I dont care.
After she finished speaking, she turned around and left. This time, no matter how Aunt Liu called her from behind, she did not turn back.
In order to prevent the babies from being too curious about the patient who was living in the house, Mo Ruyue had specially gathered them together. With the excuse of supervising their studies, she had them start to study while she apanied them as they did needlework.
Her hands had held a murder weapon, medical equipment that saved lives, and now a needle and thread used for sewing. She had really experienced everything.
Originally, if her babies clothes were torn, she would just buy new ones, but the situation that day was really urgent.
San Bao had scratched the uniform of the private school when he went to y, but he didnt dare to tell them when he got home. He nned to wear this to ss the next day, and when Mo Ruyue found out, it was not long before they were supposed to leave.
Mo Ruyue was forced to pick up a needle and thread, and she braced herself to start sewing.
It was after that day that she found that the mushroom house in her space, which had not changed for a long time, finally changed.
This time, there was a basement. The space inside was veryrge, but only a small area had been opened up.
It was a space that appeared to be a warehouse. When she pushed the door open, she saw rows of different machines, such as textile machines, sewing machines, weaving machines, and so on. It looked like a small garment factory.
When Mo Ruyue saw this, she was extremely speechless.
Could it be that the realm was also encouraging her to be a good wife and mother? Now, it had even prepared a full set of clothing machines for her.
Originally, Mo Ruyue had nned to enter the clothing factory in this space to make those waist and knee pads, but in order to prevent the babies from running around, she could only take them outside and supervise them while sewing.
Of the five babies, only Da Bao understood Mo Ruyues thoughts the most. So, he took advantage of the short break to walk to her side and whispered, Mother, Im here. Dont worry and do what you need to do. I wont let them run around.
Mo Ruyue thought about it and agreed. If she acted too deliberately, she was afraid that it would arouse the curiosity of her babies.
Fortunately, Da Bao had the authority of the big brother among the five of them, and he was also respected and trusted by his younger siblings, so it was obviously better to let him do it.
Alright, Ill leave it to you then.
As she spoke, she took her things and got up. Just as she was about to leave, Tang Tang suddenly came to her side.
Mother, didnt you want to teach Tang Tang medical skills? Whats wrong with that uncle? Can Tang Tang learn how to treat his illness from you?
When she said this, the other three babies also gathered around. They looked at Mo Ruyue and said, Thats right, Mother. Didnt you always teach Tang Tang medical skills whenever you had the chance in the past? Why arent you mentioning it this time?
That uncles injuries arent serious, so hell be leaving in a few days. It was just some superficial wounds. After I sutured them, I only changed the medicine every day. Tang Tang cant do it yet, but wasnt Tang Tang the one who made the medicine for that uncle?
Mo Ruyue secretly sighed. This matter really kepting up one after another. Fortunately, she had an excuse to brush it off.
Alright, dont pester Mother anymore. Weve been at home for the past few days and your hearts have gone wild. When you go back to the private school and go to Teacher for the academic examination, dont say you dont know anything and lose face for mother and Teacher Du.
It was Da Bao who stood up for Mo Ruyue at the critical moment. When he was serious, his words were much more effective than Mo Ruyues.
When the four babies saw that their big brother seemed to be angry, they all kept quiet and obediently returned to their seats to study.
Mo Ruyue heaved a sigh of relief. It was getting harder and harder for her to speak to the babies with a straight face, or was it because they were really sensible and there was almost no time for them to be taught a lesson?
Da Baos existence was of utmost importance in this situation, and he was the best at ying the role of the dark side.
Mo Ruyue nced at Er Bao and saw him nodding slightly. Only then did he take the leather, needle, and thread from the dustpan and go out with relief.
Since the man in ck was brought over verytest night, thest dressing change was also veryte.
Chapter 278 - 278 Fake Death
278 Fake Death
Mo Ruyue didnt let Tang Tang prepare thest bowl of medicine. Instead, she sent them to bed early. She quickly prepared the medicinal spring water in the space and brought it to the mans room.
For the entire day, it was as if there was no one in the room. It was unbelievably quiet. Even if Mo Ruyue listened carefully, she couldnt hear the mans breathing.
At one point, she thought that he had some suddenplications and died suddenly. However, when she entered the room, she saw that the man was really in a state of suspended animation.
Under such circumstances, a persons heart rate would drop to the lowest, and their breathing would also be slow and long. If it was not carefully examined, it would not be detected at all.
Mo Ruyue had once read about this kind of suspended animation in an ancient book. It was called turtle breathing technique, and it was a method that imitated the sleeping of turtles to reduce the exhaustion of the body.
If she used this method, she might be able to speed up his recovery. It seemed that this man also wanted to recover as soon as possible and leave this ce.
When Mo Ruyue entered the room with the bowl of medicine, she keenly noticed that the mans breathing seemed to have gotten heavier. She turned to look at the bed and happened to meet a pair of cold eyes.
Youre awake. I saw you sleeping during dinner, so I didnt wake you up. Do you want to eat something first?
Mo Ruyue walked to the bedside and put down the bowl of medicine. She was not in a hurry to light the oilmp. Even if it was dark, she could urately change all the medicine for him.
Im not hungry.
The man replied briefly.
The dishes are all stewed in a pot. You dont have to think that it will trouble me. The most troublesome thing is for you to recover quickly and leave.
Mo Ruyue said without any trace of politeness.
Although this man hadnt done anything to harm her or the babies, his existence was already a dangerous hidden danger.
The two times they had met, both times, he had almost stepped into a life and death situation. Who knew if there was someone following him behind, or if he would bring them some life and death disaster?
Alright, Ill eat.
The man replied again.
It was rare for him to have such a good temper and patience, especially to someone other than Mei Er. This was something incredible to him.
Perhaps it was because this woman had saved him twice in a row, and she gave him a strange sense of familiarity.
He could only give himself this exnation in his heart.
Mo Ruyue first made an excuse to go to the kitchen, but in reality, she went into the interspace and filled a bowl with the chicken soup that was stewed in the ypot. She had also added some nutritious tonics to it, all of which were good things that could help him recover his strength as soon as possible.
The man in ck didnt say a word of nonsense. When he was told to eat, he gobbled up the entire bowl of chicken soup and the chicken meat inside. He even chewed and ate all the tonics that could be eaten.
Mo Ruyue waited until he finished eating before she started to change his medicine.
Perhaps it was because of the spring water and the mans strong recovery ability, but even though it had only been a day and a night, the mans minor injuries had already healed.
As for the wound that had almost cut him in half, it had already begun to heal.
At this rate, he might be able to leave the day after tomorrow.
Mo Ruyue calcted in her heart.
Tomorrow night, prepare thest medicine for me and Ill leave immediately.
The man seemed to have seen through her thoughts. He took the initiative to say that he wanted to leave and even moved the time forward to tomorrow night.
Although I really want you to leave now, these two days wont make a difference. The hole in your shoulder will only heal the day after tomorrow. I dont want you to have the chance toe back halfway.
Although Mo Ruyues words were unpleasant to hear, it was also to make the mans injuries better.
The ck clothed man didnt say anything and just cooperated with Mo Ruyue to change the medicine. Then, hey down and slowly entered the state of turtle breathing.
Mo Ruyue tidied up the medicine and soup bowls. Just as she was about to leave the room, her vision suddenly turned ck. An intense pain seemed to prate her head in an instant, and she immediately fell unconscious.
The flow of time seemed to slow down. Mo Ruyue couldnt see anything, but she could feel that she was falling at an extremely slow speed.
The space around her seemed to have twisted into a circr passage, showing a strange scene. If one looked carefully, one would see that it was a piece of continuous shing scene put together. Not only did it have the memories of her previous life, but it also had many things she had experienced in this life.
In the process of falling, Mo Ruyue still had the mood to get closer to those twisted memory fragments and take a good look. However, before she could get close, she was pushed out of the passage by a huge repulsive force.
As soon as she fell out of the distorted space, Mo Ruyues falling speed suddenly became dozens of times faster. She twisted her body slightly and relied on the powerful core force to forcefully stabilize her lost center of gravity.
Although she had avoided the pain of falling, the bowl in her hand had fallen to the ground. Fortunately, she was not too high up from the ground, so even if the bowl fell, it did not shatter.
Mo Ruyue picked up the bowl again and subconsciously looked at the man in ck lying on the bed.
He was still in a deep sleep under the effects of the turtle breathing technique. His breathing was long and slow, and there was no sign of him waking up.
Mo Ruyue reached out and touched his forehead, but she didnt feel any wound. The door was still closed, and there was no damage on it.
Strange. Was it my illusion just now?
She mumbled to herself in confusion.
The excruciating pain she had just experienced was like being shot. She even treated her experience in the space channel as a near-death experience.
But obviously, she had not been shot at all, let alone have any near-death experience. However, the pain was so clear and deep that it did not seem like an illusion.
Mo Ruyue was a little regretful that she didnt take a closer look at the memory fragments in the space tunnel. Perhaps there were some hints among them, but she had ignored them.
There was no use in continuing to dwell on the past. Mo Ruyue quickly adjusted her emotions and left the ck clothed mans room.
Not long after she left, the man, who had his eyes closed as if he was feigning death, suddenly opened his eyes. His eyes were clear and bright, without the slightest hint of sleepiness, as if he had not fallen asleep at all.
He looked in the direction of the door, a trace of doubt in his eyes.
What happened to Lady Qin just now?
He originally wanted to pretend to be in a state of suspended animation so that Mo Ruyue could leave without worry. He didnt expect to see her suddenly fall to the side as if she had suddenly fainted.
In a moment of desperation, he didnt care that his wound would open and wanted to get up. He didnt know why he didnt want her to fall on the cold ground like that.
Chapter 279 - 279 In High Spirits
279 In High Spirits
However, just as he moved, he saw that Lady Qin suddenly stabilized her center of gravity in an incredible posture, and it seemed that her mind had also recovered.
He noticed that Lady Qins breath had turned from chaotic to steady. He immediately closed his eyes again, not letting her realize that he had been awake. He only opened his eyes after she left.
The man in ck retracted his gaze from the door and looked up at the roof.
This wasnt Lady Qins room, nor was it the beam where he hid the gold notes, but she must have already gotten the bag of gold notes.
Thest time he was saved by her, he had to give up all his savings. This time, he owed her a life. He didnt know how long he would have to wait and how many things he would have to pay back.
He then looked down at his hands. The tourmaline ring on his left thumb was a key to opening the treasure, but the money was far from enough, and it was not time to open it yet.
If he rashly handed the ring to Lady Qin, not only would it not bring wealth to the mother and babies, but it would also cause them to get killed.
The man in cks gaze on the thumb ring suddenly became cold and sharp. He thought of the reason why he had be like this, and the aura around him became even colder and more unpredictable.
There would always be people who wanted to make use of his abilities, but felt that they could not control him, so they wanted to get rid of him.
Different traps, the same move, the final oue would inevitably be the same.
The first organization that had almost cost him his life had already copsed and turned into ashes. As for the second one, although it would be a little more troublesome, it was not impossible to solve.
Now, she could only wait for him to leave before she slowly settled the score with them.
The next morning, when the babies woke up from their sleep, they suddenly found three more things on their pillows.
Ah? Yesterday, Mother said that she wanted to make leather for us, and its already done?
San Bao was the first to jump out of bed. He hugged the three pieces of leather next to his pillow and kissed them. The tiger fur was a little rough and prickly. After all, there was only one softest part of fur on a tigers abdomen.
Before Mo Ruyue was ready to start sewing, the four boys had all agreed to give the softest piece of fur to their little sister, Tang Tang
San Bao slept in the same room as his second brother, Er Bao. Er Baos reaction was much calmer than his.
San Bao, this isnt the first time youre using leather, why are you so excited?
Although he said that, the joy and excitement in his eyes were no less than his third brothers.
Second Brother, dont just talk about me, your smile is almost reaching the back of your ear. This is personally sewn by mother, how can it be the same as buying it!
As San Bao spoke, he had already started to wrap his warm waist around his waist. Although he was only wearing a thin shirt and pants, and he had just gotten out of bed, he didnt feel cold at all.
Now that he had put on the warm coat, his forehead was immediately covered in sweat.
Even so, San Bao was reluctant to take off the waist warmer, so he put on knee pads and gloves instead.
Er Bao pretended to endure for a while at the side. Finally, he couldnt bear it anymore and followed his third brother, hurriedly putting on the three leather pieces.
The two of them were showing off to each other, saying that their clothes looked better. In fact, the designs on their waists were indeed different.
Er Bao had a treasure bowl, a money tree, and a golden abacus, while San Bao had a precious horse and eighteen different weapons.
The two of thempeted for a long time and still couldnt convince the other side to give a higher height, so they unanimously decided to go to their big brother and the others to judge, and at the same time, see what the pattern on the other peoples warm waists was.
San Bao jumped off the bed, put on his shoes, and ran out. However, he was still caught by Er Bao, who had caught up with him in a hurry.
Youre not even wearing any clothes. Lets see if big brother and the others willugh at youter.
Compared to the noise in Er Baos room, the atmosphere in Da Baos room was much more harmonious.
He patiently helped Si Bao put on the waist warmer and knee pads, then put on the gloves, letting him have a good time.
Seeing that his fourth brothers face was flushed with excitement and his forehead was already covered in sweat, he immediately reached out to untie his warm waist.
Big Brother, let me wear it a little longer! Look at how fun mothers embroidery is. Its actually a frying pan and a big ricedle, haha!
Si Bao tried hard to turn his head to look behind him. after putting on the waist warmer, the drawing was behind him. If he wanted to see it, he had to turn his head back desperately.
You cant see it more clearly if you take it off. Youre already sweating. Be careful not to catch a coldter.
After all, Da Bao still had his elder brothers authority. After he said that, Si Bao did not dare to be willful anymore and obediently let his elder brother take off the waist warmer for him.
Then, he took off his gloves and knee pads. However, Si Bao did not throw the things everywhere. Instead, he folded them carefully and put them back beside the pillow.
Big Brother, what do you think the waists of Second Brother, Third Brother, Little Sister and the others will have?
Si Bao put on his own clothes and asked Da Bao.
Looking at the pattern on your warm waist and mine, Mother should have drawn the embroidery ording to what we want to do in the future. You can ask themter if its really like this.
Da Bao said as he put on his clothes.
Big Brother, arent you going to try it on and see if it fits?
Si Bao suddenly realized that his big brother had not even tried his waist warmer and knee pads.
Mother has already taken the size. Seeing that yours fits so well, I know that mine wont be bad either. Theres no need to try it on.
After Da Bao finished speaking, he picked up the three leather pieces and held them in his hands as if they were extremely precious. He walked to his own wardrobe and took out a piece of leather from inside.
He ced the leather on the cloth bag, wrapped it carefully, and put it back into the wardrobe.
Although Da Bao didnt say anything about liking it, his cherishing attitude exined everything, especially the joy in his eyes that couldnt be hidden. Even a slow person like his third brother could see it, let alone a smart and cute Si Bao like him.
However, he was not stupid enough to expose this matter. Big Brother still loved and respected Mother in his heart, but he did not show it as often as they did. However, from the bits and pieces, Mother must have discovered it herself.
Si Bao snickered in his heart, but he did not know that Da Bao had already seen his smile. He pretended not to see it, but the tips of his ears gradually turned red.
Soon, the five babies were all dressed. After washing up, it was time for their morning sses.
However, they were in high spirits today. Each of them was full of smiles, and their movements during the morning ss were very light.
The voice from outside entered the room, causing the corners of the mans lips to curl up slightly. Before the smile could even finish, it immediately froze on his face.
Chapter 280 - 280 They’re Really Here For You
280 Theyre Really Here For You
He suddenly opened his eyes, his face showing an expression of disbelief.
Speaking of which, thest time he came to deliver the gold notes, he saw a few of his babies getting along with each other. In order to wait for Mo Ruyue, he stayed here for three days in a row, but it was only three days.
Could it be that these three days had made him let down his guard against these children?
Just because they were all Lady Qins children?
!!
He quickly shook his head to get rid of this thought. He couldnt let himself continue thinking about it.
It seemed that it was best to leave tonight, otherwise he would be more and more strange. This kind of feeling of beingpletely out of his control was very dangerous, and it should be put out as soon as possible.
Mo Ruyue originally wanted to wait at home until the ck-shirted man left, and then go to Huichun Hall to give medical services. She had saved up a few days of rest days before and had not used them, so she took advantage of these days to rest.
But the n didnt change as quickly as the situation. Mo Ruyue never thought that the wolves that she hadnt seen for a long time would actually go down the mountain to find her!
Fortunately, the sky had brightened upte, and it was much colder in the mountains than at the foot of the mountain. Many vigers had already activated their winter mode in advance after storing arge amount of winter supplies.
Moreover, it wasnt a wolf that went down the mountain, but a pack of wolves. So the dogs in the vige were so intimidated by the strong smell of wild beasts that they didnt dare to move, let alone bark as a warning.
Mo Ruyue had also smelled the smell and was rmed. He quickly went to see what had happened before his babies noticed.
Da Bao, take your younger brothers and sisters to do their morning sses. Im going out for a while.
She reminded him and left in a hurry.
Big Brother, what is Mother going to do? Why did she leave so early in the morning? Could it be an emergency in the mountains?
San Bao came over and asked Da Bao in a low voice.
He originally wanted to thank his mother after the morning ss, but his mother didnt give him the chance. Now, she left in a hurry and didnt know when she woulde back.
Go and do your homework. Mother naturally has her matters, what is there to blindly inquire about.
Da Bao rarely asked about Mo Ruyue now. He still remembered that when she had just changed her sex, he had absolute trust in her. He was afraid that she would secretly sell her younger siblings and then run away with the money.
But now, he no longer thought that way. He had seen everything that his mother had done to them, and he had remembered it in his heart.
That was why if mother said that she wanted to leave, she would leave. Even if she didnt give any reason, he believed that she wouldnt abandon them and woulde back. Even if she didnt tell them any reason, she must have her own reasons. There was no need to ask.
San Bao was once again reprimanded by his big brother, and his good mood from early in the morning was immediately shattered into pieces.
However, he couldnt me anyone else. Of all the people he could ask, he had to ask big brother.
Who didnt know that although big brother didnt like Mother the most, he was definitely the one who protected mother the most now?
San Bao continued his morning training in a daze. At this time, Mo Ruyue had already arrived outside the courtyard, and was stunned by the scene in front of him.
The wolf pack that had left the valley of treasures for a long time had returned and were waiting for her outside the door. The ck wolf king seemed to be a little restless, but she did not know why.
Why did you guys go down the mountain? What if the vigers find out?
Mo Ruyue quickly walked over and patted the ck wolf kings head, indicating for it to bring the wolf pack back to the mountain with it.
No matter what happened, this was not a ce where the wolves should stay for long.
The strange thing was that the ck wolf king had always listened to her, but this time, it only stared in the direction of her yard, wagging its tail and whimpering.
Mo Ruyue looked at the ck wolf kings actions in surprise. She really couldnt guess its intentions.
It seemed that there was something at home that it was very concerned about, and it did not show any hostility. Instead, it seemed very worried and anxious.
Mo Ruyue immediately ruled out the possibility that the wolves had appeared because of the babies.
When she was performing the operation on Nie Yuanshengs mother, she was worried that something might happen to the wolves, so she had repeatedly asked Da Bao to go to the back mountain to take a look from time to time. The other babies did not have the opportunity toe into contact with the wolves indirectly.
Besides, she had been at home for the past few days and didnt find any hidden problems with the babies bodies and minds.
Could it be that the problem was with the man in ck?
Although so many thoughts shed through his mind, it was only an instant. Mo Ruyue patted the ck wolf kings head and said, No matter what happened, you guys go back to the forest first. Ille find you in a while.
When she said this, the ck wolf king nodded slightly and led the wolf pack to the back of the mountain. However, it still looked back at Mo Ruyue with every step it took. She waved her hand and urged it again, then it turned around and left in a hurry.
Mo Ruyue immediately turned around and entered the courtyard. He didnt care that the babies were still doing their morning sses in the courtyard and hurriedly entered the mans room.
Have you ever seen a pack of wolves?
She went straight to the point and the man in ck was stunned. What wolf?
Its a pack of giant wolves. Theyre bigger than the average wolf. Well, the wolf king leading them is ck.
Mo Ruyue realized that he had been too anxious just now, so she described it in detail.
Ive seen a pack of wolves like this, but not here, but on the other side of the mountain range.
The ck clothed man originally wanted to deny it, but for some reason, he suddenly thought of a fortuitous encounter before and told Mo Ruyue.
Really? Have you really seen it before?
Mo Ruyue originally had the idea of giving it a try, but he didnt expect that he had really seen it before, so he immediately asked again.
When did you see him?
She was being cautious. The mountain range stretched for a long time, and who knew if there were other wolves in the mountain? The wolf king happened to be ck.
It was only a month ago.
Although the ck clothed man didnt know why Mo Ruyue would suddenly ask him this, he still told the truth.
As expected, they really came to find you.
Mo Ruyue finally confirmed that the reason the wolves hade down the mountain was because of this ck-clothed man.
Although one problem had been solved, a new problem arose.
Please forgive me for being presumptuous, but may I ask how you met that pack of wolves? Have you ever saved any of them, or given them any help?
...
Mo Ruyue was a person who didnt like to be questioned thoroughly, but now that the giant wolves were involved, she could only temporarily transform into the person she once hated the most.
Lady Qin, what happened? Since youve asked me so many questions, you wont mind me asking a few too, right?
The man in ck raised his eyebrows. This time, he didnt answer Mo Ruyues question, but directly asked a question in return.
Its my duty. I was careless just now.
Mo Ruyue nodded and said, Its like this. I have a group of wolf friends who suddenly disappeared. I dont know where they went, but Im sure theyre temporarily gone because some of the small wolves were left behind. A few other wolves were left behind to take care of the small wolves.
Chapter 281 - 281 A Sour Feeling
281 A Sour Feeling
Just now, I found them down the mountain, just outside the door of my courtyard. This has never happened before. What surprised me the most was that they seemed to be very worried about the people in my house, so I asked you this question.
Mo Ruyue only picked the parts rted to this incident. Since she wanted others to be honest with her, she had to show her sincerity first.
Thats why you assumed that the wolves wereing for me. Thats why you asked me these questions.
The man in ck nodded. He didnt ask Mo Ruyue why she didnt think that the wolves wereing for the babies. He believed that Mo Ruyue must have her own way of judging.
Ive answered your question. Its your turn now.
Mo Ruyue brought the topic back to the original topic.
I didnt save them, nor did I help them. Instead, it seems like I was helped by them.
The ck-shirted man then exined what had happened that day in detail, but the answer made Mo Ruyue even more confused.
She had only gained their trust and help after saving the wolves, but this man had never had any contact with the wolves before. Instead, he had been saved by the wolves the first time they had met.
Not to mention that the wolves were worried about him and hade down the mountain in groups, deep into the human settlement. This really made her puzzled.
Lady Qin, did that pack of wolves return to the mountains?
The man in ck asked again.
Yes, I told them to go back to the mountain for the time being. Although I got some answers from you, I have more doubts now.
Mo Ruyue shook her head. Once again, she felt that it was a pity that she didnt use thenguage of beasts. Otherwise, she could have justmunicated directly and wouldnt have to go through so much trouble.
If its possible, can you let me see your wolf friends?
The man in ck didnt know why he suddenly asked such a question. When he came back to his senses, the words had already left his mouth.
Okay, its decided then. Before you leave tomorrow, Ill take you to see them and see whats going on.
Mo Ruyue didnt object. Instead, she readily agreed.
She also wanted to get to the bottom of this matter. After all, she now regarded the wolves as soundless friends and did not want anything to happen to them while she was not paying attention.
After the matter had been resolved, Mo Ruyue left the room. Seeing that the babies were still doing their horse stance on the plum blossom dome, she nodded in satisfaction.
Although they were at the age of curiosity, they still had a sense of propriety.
Then, Mo Ruyue left home in a hurry and ran to the back mountain where a pack of giant wolves were waiting for her.
Although many vigers had already chosen to start the cat winter early, there was still the possibility of people suddenly going up the mountain to cut wood or pick up mountain goods.
If the vigers found out that so many wolves hade down the mountain, it would definitely cause a panic.
By then, the authorities would probably be alerted to attack the wolves, which would be troublesome.
Mo Ruyue quickened her pace. As expected, in the dense forest near the end of the vige, she found giant wolves standing or lying down. They didnt even hide their tracks. When they saw Mo Ruyue, they immediately surrounded her.
You really are
Mo Ruyue was already speechless. She had never thought that the giant wolves would take such a risk for that ck-clothed man. To be honest, she actually felt a little sour in her heart.
This feeling should be called jealousy, right?
She thought about it and suddenlyughed at herself.
In both her previous and current lives, this was the first time she had experienced the feeling of jealousy, and it was actually because of a pack of wolves. This really made her not know whether tough or cry.
Alright, dont worry. Ive already saved that persons life. Hes recuperating at my house. Ill bring him to see you tomorrow night.
Mo Ruyue was still thinking about the most important thing and directly told the wolf pack about her agreement with the ck-clothed man.
Wuwu.
The ck wolf king raised its head repeatedly, showing an extremely excited look. However, it could still be considered depressed. Some of the giant wolves were already jumping up and down, not knowing how to be happy.
After getting Mo Ruyues promise, the ck wolf king quickly led the wolf pack back into the deep mountains. In the end, no one noticed that a pack of giant wolves had appeared in the vige on this cold early winter morning.
The time quickly came to the next night. When Mo Ruyue was changing the ck-clothed mans medicine at noon, she discovered that his most serious knife wound had also begun to close.
There was still some time before thest dressing change at night, but she came to the mans room in advance.
Ill bring you up the mountain tonight. After you meet my wolf friends, leave immediately and nevere back.
She then ced a package that she had brought in next to the man.
This is a set of clothes I prepared for you, some silver, and some medicine that I specially concocted. It will be very effective in healing your wounds. Also, I hope this will be thest time we meet.
She wasnt the kind of person who would think for strangers, but this time, seeing that her wolf friends seemed to value him, she would do something extra.
Lady Qin.
The ck clothed man only called out to Mo Ruyue once and didnt say anything else.
Whats the matter? Is there something wrong?
Mo Ruyue saw that he seemed to have something to say, but for some reason, he had shut his mouth, so she took the initiative to ask.
Its nothing. I just wanted to thank you, The man in ck said indifferently, and then closed his eyes again, as if he was resting.
Mo Ruyue clearly saw that he didnt mean what he said, but since he didnt want to say it, she didnt have to ask.
When he heard Mo Ruyues door close, he raised his left hand and looked at the tourmaline ring on his thumb, seemingly a little lost in thought.
He had almost given the ring away just now, but before he could finish cleaning up the mess, not only would the ring not bring them wealth, but it would also bring them trouble.
A situation like this, where he had no self-control, was simply fatal to him. Could it be that after resting here for a few days, he had forgotten such an important principle?
The man in ck shook his head and put his hand down.
Although there were two big holes in his shoulders, they were almost healed. He still felt weak when he raised his arms, but it was nothing to him.
Just as Lady Qin said, after seeing the pack of giant wolves, he would leave immediately.
...
The life here was toofortable, sofortable that he had forgotten that he was someone who should live in the dark.
If he wanted to see a few more sunrises and find his Mei Er, he shouldnt let himself go.
After changing the dressing for thest time, the man in ck turned over and sat up on the bed.
He had already changed into the new clothes that Mo Ruyue had brought for him. The woman standing in front of him was also dressed in ck, which made her figure even taller and more exquisite.
Chapter 282 - 282 Don’t See Each Other Again In The Future
282 Dont See Each Other Again In The Future
The babies are already asleep. Lets set off now. I want to be back as soon as possible. Mo Ruyue said and took the lead to walk out of the house.
The man in ck put on his shoes and took the bag that Mo Ruyue had prepared. When he was about to leave, he suddenly stopped.
He looked around the room where he had been lying for a few days. He remembered that thest time he was saved by Lady Qin, he was hidden in a hidden cave. At that time, her attitude was much colder than now.
This time, he was saved again and was sent directly to Lady Qins house. It was really unbelievable that she didnt kick him out directly.
However, there shouldnt be a next time.
After solving the hidden danger he had left behind, he would leave this ce. Even if he had to go to the ends of the earth, he would find his Mei Er.
When he came out of the house, he saw Mo Ruyue standing quietly in the courtyard, not showing any signs of impatience.
Im sorry. The man in ck apologized subconsciously.
His hesitation just now had dyed him, but he felt that he should have said thank her.
It was for the sake of her not urging him, and for the sake of her saving him again.
Lets go quickly. Otherwise, the wolf pack will get impatient and mighte down the mountain again.
As Mo Ruyue spoke, she directly used the sleeve arrow to flip over the courtyard wall.
The five babies were already asleep, and the courtyard door was locked. She couldnt just leave the courtyard door open like this, so she chose to climb over the wall.
The man in ck also followed closely behind, but he was rtively calm. The tip of his foot tapped on a stone under the courtyard wall, and his whole body leaped up like a green onion plucked from the drynd, and he also climbed over the courtyard wall.
The two of them ran towards the back of the mountain, one in front and one behind. However, Mo Ruyue wasnt taking the ck-clothed man to the treasure valley at this time. The wolf pack didnt have such patience, and they were probably already here.
Sure enough, just as the two of them entered the back mountain, a ck shadow pounced over, followed by a burst of coquettish whimpers. Immediately after, more ck shadows pounced over, jumping around the two of them.
Look, they are here to wee you.
Mo Ruyue patted the huge wolf beside her and said to the ck-clothed man.
Thats right. This is the pack of wolves I encountered before.
Although the two of them did not light any torches to avoid attracting attention, their vision was not affected by the darkness. The man in ck could naturally see the appearance of the pack of giant wolves.
As he spoke, the ck wolf king, who had been standing at the side, slowly walked over and nudged his head into his hand to show affection.
Thats strange. Why are they so attentive and close to you? Could it be that they suddenly disappeared because they wanted to find you? Mo Ruyue said doubtfully.
However, only the wolves knew the answer to this question, and they could not give her any answer.
Mo Ruyue stayed in the back mountain for a while. Seeing that the wolf pack and the ck-clothed man were getting along well, he couldnt help but feel a little sour in his heart.
It was as if his beloved treasure had suddenly belonged to someone else. That kind of surprise and reluctance, as well as some unwillingness.
However, she didnt express her emotions, but just watched quietly from the side.
The man in ck only interacted with the wolves for a short while before he turned to look at her. Lady Qin, Im leaving. Thank you.
Remember my words, dont see each other again in the future.
Mo Ruyue shook her head. Her original intention had not changed even now. As long as this ck-shirted man could leave her life, everything would be fine.
The ck clothed mans eyes slightly dimmed, and a faintyer of self-mockery appeared.
A person like him should indeed be treated as a virus and avoided like the gue.
He didnt say anything else. His figure slightly swayed, and a light tapping sound came from the forest, gradually disappearing from sight.
The pack of wolves did not follow. They stood where they were, but their eyes were fixed in the direction the man in ck had left.
Mo Ruyue walked to the ck wolf kings side and gently stroked its back.
Im going back too. You guys have to take care of yourselves. Dont let anything happen to you.
After she finished speaking, she left quietly, just like when she came. She jumped into the courtyard from the wall and did not wake the sleeping babies.
The next day, when the babies woke up, they found out that their uncle, who lived in the next house, had left.
Other than Da Bao, the other babies had never seen him before. Although they were curious, he was just a stranger who came and went. He did not cause any ripples in their lives.
Mo Ruyue also returned to her usual life. She ended her vacation early and returned to Huichun Hall to give medical services. On the first day she resumed her medical service, the line of people came from the clinic all the way to the street outside.
Lady Qin, your market is still the most optimistic. Ever since you received the imperial courtsmendation, who knows how many peoplee here every day to inquire about you. They want to know in advance when you will return so that they cane early to line up.
A doctor came to Mo Ruyues table and took advantage of the slight break in between breaths to get close to her.
Although Lady Qin rarely interacted with people, in addition to Imperial Doctor Tian and her little assistant Dong Qing, Doctor Wang who had once helped her with the operation and Doctor Lins assistant Xin Yi, only these four people in the entire Huichun Hall were close to her.
But now that she had the honor awarded by the imperial court, everyone wanted to talk to her. When the time came, she would have the capital to brag in front of others.
This is not a good thing. There is nothing to be happy about.
Mo Ruyue usually didnt respond to such conversations, but for some reason, she made an exception today. Although her tone was still cold, it was enough to make the doctor feel ttered.
Yes, Lady Qin is right! The more people whoe for consultation, the more money we can earn. But who doesnt want to be healthy? Who would want to fall sick? Isnt this bad luck?
He continued to chat with her, thinking that perhaps he could take this opportunity to get closer to Mo Ruyue in one go.
However, his wishful thinking was destined to fail. This time, Mo Ruyue had already waved to the door, signaling Dong Qing to bring the next patient over. He had no intention of talking to the doctor.
Although he had been rebuffed, the doctor only touched his nose awkwardly and left with a random excuse.
Now, everyone in Huichun Hall knew that Mo Ruyues reputation had already reached the heavens. She was no longer the same as before. Even her proud and aloof personality that had never changed was now tolerated by more people instead of being indignant behind her back.
As a well-known Divine Doctor, if she didnt have a proud and aloof personality, she wouldnt be worthy of her title.
One morning, when Mo Ruyue woke up, she suddenly saw ayer of silver light reflected outside the window. At first, she thought it was the moon that had be round again, but a thought suddenly shed through her mind. She immediately put on her clothes and got out of bed, rushing to open the door.
Chapter 283 - 283 It’s Snowing
283 Its Snowing
A gust of cold air blew against his face with fine snowkes. The courtyard was already covered in a thickyer of snow, and even the outside of the courtyard was already a world of silver and white.
Its actually snowing.
Mo Ruyue couldnt help but sigh.
When she first came to this world, it was early spring. Now, the first snow had already fallen, which meant that she had been in this world for almost a year.
Time passed by so quickly that she had not even noticed it. Unknowingly, she had already experienced the four seasons of the year in this world.
Just as she was sighing, the door of the room next door suddenly opened. The boys rushed out of the room and ran to the courtyard, cheering and jumping for joy.
Its snowing, its snowing! I was wondering why it was a little cold. Its snowing!
San Bao was the most excited, jumping up and down like a living monkey, cheering as he did so.
Big Brother, Second Brother, Si Bao,e quickly! The snow is so cold that my hands are freezing!
He picked up a handful of snow from the ground and made it into a snowball. He wanted to throw it at Er Bao, but Da Bao was one step ahead of him. The snowball was about to hit his face.
Even though San Bao was the one who threw the snowball, he did not dare to see his big brother being hit. He hurriedly covered his eyes with his hands, but he still peeked at him through the gaps between his fingers.
Da Bao had gone through so much training in the morning ss. If he could still be hit by this snowball, he would not agree to it even if Mo Ruyue did not punish him for extra training.
He didnt move his lower body at all. He only twisted his upper body slightly with his waist strength and dodged the snowball.
Before San Bao could celebrate, he saw the snowball hit Si Baos face, who was behind his big brother.
Si Bao was still in a daze when the snowball from the sky hit him. The cold chill covered his head and face, and his sleepiness was gone.
Big Brother! Look at Third Brother, hes already bored so early in the morning!
Si Bao saw that his elder brothers body had not twisted back and knew that he was affected. He immediately began toin.
Da Bao also knew that his fourth brother had met with an unexpected disaster, and it was more or less rted to his dodging. Without saying anything, he squatted down and formed a big snowball. While San Bao was still in a daze, he suddenly nced over.
He hit the 10th ring, a perfect target!
The boys were already having a snowball fight in the yard, and seemed to have forgotten about the morning ss.
Although Mo Ruyue was standing at the door of her room, she had no intention of reminding them.
In any case, if they didnt do the morning ss, they could make up for it with double the night ss. This was the first snow of the year, and also the first snow that the babies could really have fun with. So, they should have fun first.
Mother, its really snowing. Can I y with my brothers?
Tang Tang walked to Mo Ruyue and asked in a low voice.
Her mother had said that only with self-discipline could one form good habits. Now that his brothers had forgotten about their morning sses, this was not something a self-disciplined person should do.
However, the pure white snow in front of her was too alluring.
It was as if the ground, houses, courtyards, and trees were all sprinkled with a thickyer of white sugar.
It looked like soft cotton, but it felt cold to the touch and creaked when stepped on. There were so many changes and wonderful feelings. She would never get tired of it no matter how she yed.
The only thing Tang Tang could remember of the past winters was that they were cold.
She didnt have thick cotton clothes, she couldnt eat her fill, and she had to follow her brothers to do endless housework for her mother. How could she have the mood to enjoy the snow?
So even though she already knew that her mother was no longer the mother she used to be, as soon as she mentioned that she wanted to y with the snow, those bad memories of the past came back to her instantly, making her feel a sense of fear.
Go ahead, but theyre too crazy to y snowball fights. Mother will build a snowman with you, okay?
Mo Ruyue looked at Tang Tangs careful appearance and couldnt help but feel pain in her heart.
It turned out that those terrifying memories had not beenpletely forgotten or healed, but had been buried deep. Once the time was right, they would still be dug out from the deepest part of the memory.
Mo Ruyue felt that she had not done enough. She had to work harder to cover the bad memories with new beautiful memories. Perhaps on the next day when the first snow fell, Tang Tang would not have to ask her so carefully and could happily y with the snow.
Build a snowman? Yes, good!
When Tang Tang heard her mothers suggestion, her eyes suddenly lit up. The light in her eyes was something Mo Ruyue had never seen before. Even when she ate delicious food, wore beautiful clothes, and was able to go to school with her brothers, she had never had this light.
However, such a light made her expressione to life all of a sudden. That look of disbelief and excitement made Mo Ruyue couldnt help but pull Tang Tang into her arms and cherish her for a while.
Ever since Tang Tang had started attending sses with Mr. Du, she had rarely acted like a spoiled child in front of her mother. She felt that she had grown up and that acting like a spoiled child was something only children would do. However, she had forgotten that she was only a child who was not even five years old.
Now that she was being hugged and kissed by her mother, she felt sweet and warm in her heart. She thought that her mother would not care for her so much when she grew up, but she did not expect that her mother had not changed.
After kissing Tang Tang enough, Mo Ruyue put her down. They had more important things to do, which was to build a snowman!
Although the boys were having a snowball fight, they were also listening to the conversation between their mother and little sister. They also did not miss the words build a snowman.
Mother, let us help too!
Once again, San Bao was the first to rush over. When it came to ying, no one was more enthusiastic than him.
But the snow in the courtyard has been dirtied. Lets go outside. Its still fine!
He also looked at Mo Ruyue eagerly. His droopy dog eyes looked especially innocent and urgent.
Alright, get a shovel and a broom, as well as a straw hat and carrots. Lets go and build a snowman!
As soon as Mo Ruyue spoke, the babies immediately cheered. Even Da Bao, who had always been calm, couldnt help but smile. He turned and was the first to go to the woodshed to get tools.
Soon, six people, one big and five small, stood in the snow outside the house.
There was still arge open space between their house and the neighboring Lius house. Other than the six of them, no one else had set foot in this ce. It was still a white expanse.
Lets do it here! Are we going to make a big one together or a small one each?
Mo Ruyue asked this on purpose. She really wanted to know whether the five babies valued the group or the individual more.
Mother, lets make a big one together.
The first one to speak was actually Si Bao, and his words were even more unexpected to Mo Ruyue.
...
Chapter 284 - 284 Building A Snowman
284 Building A Snowman
Thats right, Mother. If Tang Tang wants to build a snowman, it definitely wont be as fast and good as us. What if she gets anxious? Lets just build a big one together.
Although San Baos answer was also in line with Mo Ruyues request, the words he said really made people not know whether tough or cry.
You guys also chose to pile up the big one together?
She then turned to Da Bao and Er Bao.
!!
Yes, lets do it together so that we can have a sense of participation. Mother once told us the story of a pair of chopsticks. We havent forgotten it.
Although Da Bao didnt say anything, he just nodded silently.
It seemed that everyones thoughts were the same. Mo Ruyue also nodded and said, In that case, lets make a snowman together!
After their mother spoke, the babies burst out in cheers for the second time.
This time, Mo Ruyue didnt y the leading role, but gave the initiative to the babies.
Since were going to build a snowman, we have to do it well. We cant just do it sloppily. We have to divide the work and cooperate. So, lets talk about what youre each responsible for?
Her words were just a guide, and the final choice was still in the hands of the babies.
Lets make little snowballs. Si Bao will be in charge of rolling the snowballs. You two will be in charge of rolling the snowmans head out.
At this time, Er Bao took the initiative to take on the role of distributing tasks. He was the most calctive person, and the n that he nned would never be wrong.
San Bao and Big Brother will be in charge of building the snowmans body. You dont need to roll the snowballs, just shovel the snow around and pile it together.
After Er Bao had settled his younger brothers and sisters, he began to arrange his older and younger brothers. In the end, only he and his mother had not been assigned any tasks.
Then what should I do with you?
Mo Ruyue took the initiative to ask.
Mother and I will be in charge of supporting these two groups at any time. As you often say, we are two bricks, we will move wherever we need to!
Er Bao said with a smile, setting the division ofbor between him and Mo Ruyue.
Compared to the snow shoveling group, the progress of Tang Tang and Si Baos group was not very smooth.
They had originally been slowly rolling a small snowball into a big snowball, but they always identally used too much force and crushed the snowball, so they had to do it again.
On the other hand, Da Baos group only needed to shovel the snow around them, pile it up, and slowly trim it.
Fortunately, Tang Tang and Si Bao were not impatient. Although they failed several times in a row and their progress was far behind that of their eldest and third brothers group, they were still not arrogant and impatient. They would readjust their strength every time they failed.
Mo Ruyue watched from the side and nodded in her heart.
Originally, she had nned to teach them how to control their strength if they were a little impatient. She didnt expect them to be able to figure it out on their own.
Building a snowman could be a very casual entertainment, but it also turned into an educational and fun ssroom. Obviously, the two babies chose thetter at the same time, using their own way to turn the frustration of failure into a kind of fun.
Just as Da Baos group had roughly built the snowmans body, Si Bao had rolled the snowmans head out.
The next step was to move the snowmans head to its body without breaking the snowball. This task was left to Tang Tang.
Her hands were light, so she had to ensure that she could move while holding the snowball, but she couldnt use too much force to cause the snowball to break. This actually not only involved the control of the strength of the arm and wrist, but more importantly, the control of the core power.
Tang Tang carefully picked up the snow ball, adjusted her posture, and quickly walked toward the snowman.
She didnt deliberately slow down her pace or move the snowball carefully. Instead, she held the snowball normally and even walked a little faster than usual.
When she sessfully ced the snowball on the snowman, Mo Ruyue even felt that she subconsciously heaved a sigh of relief.
Fortunately, it didnt shatter and she seeded.
However, this was just a snowman. Why was it that as a bystander, she was even more nervous than the person who was actually building it?
Alright, next up is the segment that Mother and I will be participating in!
Er Baos hands were already itching for a fight, and he couldnt wait to join in.
Lets all design something for the snowman, and then well vote to decide whose work is the most popr. Whoevers work will be the final form for the snowman! What do you guys think?
Second Brother, dont tell me you want us to go back to the room and draw? Dont even talk about the trouble, even if were all wet from the snow now, and our shoes are wet too, itll be difficult to clean up when the house is wet!
Si Bao was the first to object.
In the past, he had always been very supportive of his second brothers suggestions. Of course, the premise was that they had to be reasonable. But now, it seemed that these suggestions were obviouslyborious and unrewarding. Therefore, he did not give Er Bao any face and directly raised an objection.
You dont have to go back to your room to draw.
Er Bao said with a smile. He didnt feel embarrassed at all that his suggestion had been rejected by his fourth brother.
He casually broke off a dead branch and started to draw on the ground that had just been shoveled.
Although the weather was cold, the ground covered by snow had not beenpletely frozen. The dried branches could still leave shallow marks on the ground.
We can also draw on the snow, but we have to spread out and take up a bigger space so that we can draw more.
This time, it was Tang Tang who spoke. She didnt know why her second brother didnt directly draw on the snow, but chose to draw on the ground, which was rtively more difficult to draw. It would take a lot of effort to draw such shallow marks, otherwise, it would be impossible to tell what he had drawn.
Er Bao made an expression of realization and said, Aiya, I forgot about that. I was just thinking that thisnd is as soft as it was in summer, so it wouldnt take much effort to draw it. Tang Tang is still the smart one. Lets do it this way. Well each take a space and then disperse.
Mo Ruyueughed in her heart. Er Bao had always been the one with the most ideas among the few babies. How could he not have thought that it would be difficult to draw when the ground was frozen in winter?
She had seen him winking at Da Bao just now, but it was just to make Tang Tang say this, so he had many reasons to praise her.
Among the four of them, Er Bao was the one who treasured Tang Tang the most.
Da Bao was the oldest among them. He was mature, calm, and serious. He had the dignity of an elder brother and was able to hold his ground at critical moments. Although he was a little distant from his four younger siblings, he still loved and protected them.
Chapter 285 - 285 The Considerate Little Cotton-padded Jacket
285 The Considerate Little Cotton-padded Jacket
San Bao was a martial arts fanatic and had a lively and carefree personality. He did not care about many small details. Although he respected his elder brothers and loved his younger siblings, his personality was still a little rough and he could not take into ount Tang Tangs delicate thoughts.
As for Si Bao, he was only a year older than Tang Tang. He was still a child who was willing to act coquettishly and needed to be pampered. Although he looked serious when he stood in front of the stove and cooked, he waspletely different when he left the stove.
Only Er Bao, who aspired to be the number one merchant in the country, was able to sense the small changes in Tang Tangs emotions.
Although Tang Tang didnt show it just now, a few failures inevitably had a little impact on her because she was apetitive person no matter what she did. She liked to seed in one try the most, even when she was ying games.
That was why Er Bao had deliberately found such an excuse, just so that he could have a chance to properly praise her.
Of course, the four boys were all sis-maniacs. They treated Tang Tang like a treasure in their hands, which made Mo Ruyue, who had seen through everything, particrly envious.
She had never experienced what it was like to be loved by her parents and brothers, but she knew that Tang Tang would never experience what she had experienced.
Even if she had never seen her father when she was born, her mother and four brothers who loved her would definitely pamper her like a little princess.
She just didnt know which familys kid would benefit from this in the future.
Mo Ruyue shook her head. Rather than worrying about Tang Tang, she should be worried about the poor man who was going to be her son-inw.
The four older brothers who had a sisterplex were even more difficult to deal with than her mother who had a daughterplex.
The six of them drew out six areas and each of them began to draw with a branch.
Fortunately, the ce outside was big enough for them to run away even if they had to.
Because Mo Ruyue often had to make her own weapons, her drawing skills were perfect. Her style was to sketch, so it was easy for her to draw a shape.
In addition to studying in the private school, the five babies also had to learn some other skills.
Although Lin Zhiyuan was only a teacher in a private school in a mountain vige, he was proficient in music, chess, calligraphy, and painting. He was also an all-rounder in poetry.
Therefore, other than teaching what was supposed to be taught in the textbook, he also taught many things that were not taught in the textbook.
The only thing Mo Ruyue could help with was drawing and reading books, as well as lighting up and improving her babies martial arts.
At this time, the five babies were all focused on drawing with the dead branches. It was obviously just an entertainment ornament, but it made them create the atmosphere of apetition.
As Mo Ruyue drew, she peeked at the other babies drawings out of the corner of her eye.
Even though there was some distance between each of them, for the sake of convenience, she arranged the six of them into two groups of three. With her vision, this distance was not a problem at all.
If they were to fix the style ording to their drawings, it might be a big project.
Look at Da Baos painting. It was a man in a wide robe withrge sleeves. He had an elegant appearance. It was either Lin Zhiyuan or Du Zhongheng. It seemed that although he did not say it, deep down, he still yearned to be an official and be a person like the two gentlemen.
Er Bao drew a God of Fortune, which was in line with his great ambition of bing the number one merchant.
There was no need to mention San Bao, who had drawn the martial arts star in the sky. This was the patron saint of all martial arts practitioners, so it was normal for him to take it out to draw.
Mo Ruyue couldnt guess what Si Baos drawing was. She had never seen what the God of Cookery looked like. But from the person he drew, he had a pot in one hand and a spoon in the other. He should be the God of Cookery. But why did he look a little simr to Si Bao?
Finally, she looked at Tang Tang. The person she drew made Mo Ruyue stunned.
That was clearly her appearance. Although there were only a few strokes of her eyebrows, it vividly depicted the cold and distant charm between her eyebrows.
Other people drew either the deepest desire in their hearts, the most worshipped idol, or the person they wanted to be the most. Only Tang Tang drew her, Mo Ruyue, which really made her feel very warm and touched.
It was said that a daughter was a mothers intimate little cotton-padded jacket, and it was indeed so!
Mo Ruyue turned to look at her own drawing and couldnt help butugh.
It turned out that she had unknowingly drawn out what she cherished the most.
It was a family portrait painted on the snow. She was holding Tang Tang in her arms, with San Bao and Si Bao standing on her left and right, and Da Bao and Er Bao standing behind her.
In a time without cameras, the only thing that could keep a familys image was probably a portrait.
Babies, when the weather gets better and the snow haspletely melted, lets go to the art studio in the city to draw a portrait, shall we?
Mo Ruyue suddenly suggested.
Ah? Do you want a portrait? The kind with the whole family? Good, good!
Si Bao was the first to raise his head and p his hands as he replied with a smile.
Mother, cant we go after we finish building the snowman? Since weve already proposed it, we should do it early so that we wont have to worry about it every day.
Er Bao had to n everything and find the most suitable n. This had already be his subconscious. When Mo Ruyue first suggested it, he immediately started to n.
Mother, why do you suddenly want a portrait, and a family portrait at that? Could it be that youre nning to leave?
Da Bao, on the other hand, thought deeper. At first, he was worried that his bad mother would sell his brothers and sisters and run away with the money, butter, he was worried that they would be a burden to his good mother and drag her down to go further.
Now that her mother had been awarded by the imperial court, there would definitely be more people who wanted to see her. However, she was not even allowed to spend the new year at home and was going to leave for a long time?
As soon as he said this, the other four babies were stunned. They couldnt care about their own questions and looked at Mo Ruyue in unison, afraid that they would see their mother nod in agreement.
Mo Ruyue didnt expect Da Bao to ask such a question. She originally just wanted to draw a family portrait with the babies, but she didnt expect Da Bao to think so deeply that the other babies were also scared.
I wont, Da Bao. Mother wont be epting any patients who need surgery from far away until next spring. We must spend the new year together and get rid of all the bad luck this year. We can live a peaceful and healthy life next year and every year after that.
Mo Ruyue immediately exined to the five babies.
She no longer felt as indifferent as she did when she first met the five babies. Now, she truly treated them as her own children.
They were no longer the NPCs in the books she had read, but living people with flesh and blood.
Chapter 286 - 286 Can’t Make An Exception
286 Cant Make An Exception
Yes, I believe in you, Mother!
Tang Tang, who didnt have time to speak just now, finally found a chance to speak. She immediately expressed her feelings to Mo Ruyue.
She was the first baby to let down her guard against Mo Ruyue and the first baby to trust her with all her heart. No wonder Mo Ruyue would dote on her so much. It was because she was a good baby who really deserved it.
Yes, we also believe that Mother will keep her word.
Si Bao also chimed in.
He had to prepare a family dinner for the new year. He wanted to fight with his mother to let him cook alone.
Aiya, Mother must be afraid that well grow up in the blink of an eye, so she wants to draw a family portrait. When we grow up to be tall, handsome, and beautiful, she can still take the previous portrait and reminisce about it.
San Bao boasted shamelessly, ruthlessly sucking up to himself. He also conveniently dragged his other brothers and sisters along with him.
Big Brother?
Er Bao didnt say anything. He just turned to look at Da Bao. In fact, this was also a way of expressing his position, but he was also asking for Da Baos opinion.
Mo Ruyue also turned to look at Da Bao.
The knot in his heart was too deep, and it would take a long time to untie it.
It should be said that he was more worried about his personal gains and losses. Who would have thought that such a mature Da Bao would have such a sensitive and fragile side?
Yes, its like this.
Da Bao nodded, then lowered his head and continued to draw. He kept all his emotions in his eyes.
As soon as the six images appeared, the six of them fell into deep thought.
No matter how he looked at it, theplexity of the drawing was not something they could make.
In the end, Mo Ruyue waved her hand and said, Just pile them up like this. Use the carrot as the nose, use the ck button as the eyes, and then put on the straw hat. Its done!
Then what about our picture?
Tang Tang looked at the six paintings on the ground with some pity. They were all very well drawn. If they were piled up, they would definitely be very fun.
Just keep it. Our snowman will not be lonely with these six paintings.
Although Mo Ruyue said this, she was thinking in her mind that she should go to the tool room in the interspace and make six molds and directly mold six snowmen. It would be good to give the babies a surprise.
Mother, Tang Tang,e quickly. Lets add something to each snowman! Ill go first! Ill use a branch to make a hand for it!
San Bao was the first to stick two dead branches into the snowmans body, and it was unknown when he had run off to pick them up.
It was obvious that they had been carefully selected. There were actually a few small branches on each withered branch that looked like fingers.
Then Im going to make a nose for the snowman. Mother just said to use carrots.
Tang Tang came to the small basket of props, took out a carrot from it, and ran to the snowman, but she couldnt reach the snowmans head no matter how close she got.
She stood on her tiptoes, but she was afraid that she would lose her bnce and push the snowmans head away.
Ill help you!
Er Bao was standing next to the snowman. He held Tang Tangs waist from the front and carried her up, allowing her to insert the carrot into the snowmans face smoothly.
Then Ill take the eyes.
Si Bao took the ck button. He was only a little taller than Tang Tang, so it was Er Bao who tied his hands.
Ill take the hat,
Er Bao picked up the straw hat, but after he put it on the snowman, there were no more props in the prop basket that could be used to make a snowman.
Da Bao didnt say anything. He just turned around and walked into the courtyard. After a while, he came out with arge square towel.
It was usually used toy the table, but she didnt expect Da Bao to use it.
He directly unfolded the handkerchief and wrapped it around the snowmans neck, making a cloak.
The handkerchief was blue with white flowers on it, and it looked even more elegant when it was wrapped around the snowmans neck.
Now, everyones eyes were focused on Mo Ruyue, wanting to see what else she could add to the snowman.
Mo Ruyue smiled slightly. She took out a big red paper from somewhere, tore it into two circles, and stuck it on the snowmans left and right cheeks.
The two red round faces immediately made the snowman look charmingly na?ve, and it also made the babiesugh. Even Da Baos eyes were filled with a smile.
A snowman that looked a little rough but was very cute stood in the white snow, making the monotonous and cold scenery suddenlye to life.
When Mo Ruyue saw the sincere smiles on her babies faces, her heart was filled with a sense of aplishment.
Once again, she was sure of one thing. As long as she could see her babies smiles, she was willing to break some of her principles and do anything for them.
Alright, its enough to y for a while. Its time for the snow to melt, and its even colder than when it snowed. Youll be drenched in sweat from ying, so dont catch a cold.
I know, Mother.
The babies said in unison. They immediately stopped ying with each other and obediently walked home one by one.
Mo Ruyue also followed behind, preparing to boil a few pots of hot water for them to take a good bath to ward off the cold.
The family happily busied themselves in the courtyard, and no one noticed that the snowman outside had two small mustaches under his nose.
It seemed to be stuck on with some kind of hair, and it did not seem to be firmly attached. A gust of wind blew, and the two strands of beard were blown off again. They spun and floated to the side as if they had never existed.
The peaceful days had only passed for a few days when someone came to the door again. This time, it was Mo Ruyues old acquaintance.
Young Master, what wind brought you here?
Mo Ruyue looked at the man in front of her and asked in surprise.
Ever since she had terminated her contract with Guani building, she had not sent any more prey to them.
...
Although she had agreed to the young masters request to asionally hunt forrge prey, she did not have to personally send it over. As long as there was a message, she could take the initiative to bring people to collect it.
However, she never had the time to go hunting in the mountains after that, so she never went to Guani building again.
Lady Qin, today I presumptuously came to visit because I really have no choice. I hope that Lady Qin can save my life!
The young masters face was pale, and he looked pained and anxious. He had dark circles under his eyes, and his eyeballs were bloodshot. It looked like he had not slept for a few days.
Young Master, tomorrow is the day Ill be giving medical services. You should know that I dont receive any patients on rest days.
Mo Ruyues expression calmed down. Her rule had been announced in ck and white. As the young master of Guani building, it was impossible for him not to know. However, he still came to find her at this time that belonged to her and the babies. He had really vited her taboo.
I know, Lady Qin. If I didnt have to, I really wouldnt take the risk of being hated by you toe and find you.
The young master also had a pleading expression on his face, hoping that he wouldnt anger Mo Ruyue.
The rules Ive set cant be broken by my own hands. No matter what reason you have, you cant make me break them.
Although the two of them had a good time together in the past, he still wasnt qualified enough for Mo Ruyue to make an exception for him.
...
Chapter 287 - 287 Agreed
287 Agreed
Lady Qin, I beg you, please help me on the ount that we have a good friendship. I promise you that it wont take up too much of your time. Ill personally send you back soon and wont dy your time with the babies.
The young master knew that Mo Ruyues heart was filled with her babies. Recently, she had suddenly strictly adhered to her consultation hours because she had been away for too long and wanted to spend more time with her babies.
So he also used this excuse to gain Mo Ruyues approval.
Tell me what happened first.
!!
Mo Ruyue felt that the young master must have been too anxious. He hade to her for help, but not only did he not mention the most important thing, but he had also been wasting time on nonchnt interceding. On ount of their friendship, she would give him some advice for the time being.
Oh, right, right. Lady Qin, look at my brain. I forgot everything in a hurry.
The young master also said in realization and patted the back of his head several times.
Its like this. My mother suddenly contracted a strange disease. She gained 80 jin of weight in three months. Now, shes like a meat mountain. A few days ago, she suddenly fell into aa and has not woken up until now!
A sudden increase of 80 jin in three months?
Mo Ruyue muttered.
It sounded like a situation that would only happen after taking hormones. Although sudden weight gain could also ur due to endocrine disorders, it would not be that exaggerated.
If its such an illness, it wont kill you in a short time, so why are you so anxious? I think every doctor in Huichun Hall should be able to treat this illness, and its not that I cant.
It wasnt that Mo Ruyue didnt want to help, but the doctors in Huichun Hall were almost all-rounders, but they were more specialized in one or several subjects, so they didnt show their omnipotence.
However, Mo Ruyue was truly proficient in all subjects, so she was like a bright moon in the sky among the crowd. The stars beside her were dim, and they couldnt be seen at all.
Lady Qin, this is a long story. Its just that my sister was hurt by something, so she didnt eat for a while. Then, she started to eat a lot, and eventer, she couldnt stop eating.
At first, we thought she was eating to ease her mood. Later, when we found something wrong, we also went to Huichun Hall to find a doctor. I heard that you went to Ping City, so I asked Doctor Wang toe and take a look.
After he checked it, he only said that her spleen and stomach were weak and that the qi in her body was not in harmony. He then gave her a prescription, but it had no effect at all.
When the young master said this, he couldnt help but sigh.
Because of this matter, my mother has been overly worried and is unable to get up. In the past few days, her body has be even heavier and she cant even get out of bed. Although I dont know much about medicine, I can see that her face is ashen. She doesnt look good.
Thats why I came to find you in a hurry. Im afraid that something might happen to my mother.
When Mo Ruyue heard this, she also understood why the young master hade to find her so urgently.
If it was when she had juste to this world, even if someone was about to die in front of Mo Ruyue, she would walk over that person without even looking at him. But now, she had gradually changed. At least, she would not really ignore certain people.
Big Brother, do you think Mother will go and help that uncle?
In the study, five little heads were squeezed together and looked out through the crack of the door. Although they couldnt hear the conversation between their mother and the uncle clearly, from the uncles expression, he was probably here to ask their mother to see someone.
Ever since her mother had returned from Ping City, such matters had not stopped. However, her mother had rejected all of them.
They all had an impression of this uncle. He was the young master of Guani building in the county. In the past, the game that mother hunted would be sent there regrly to exchange for some silver.
However, when her mother started to give medical services in Huichun Hall, she received a lot of shares, so she no longer had to rely on hunting to make a living. Therefore, the contract was not renewed when it expired, but the rtionship with that side was notpletely broken.
If it was someone else, they believed that their mother would definitely reject him. However, this uncle was different from the others. Their mother had talked to him for a long time. Perhaps she would really make an exception for him.
Whether Mother will help him or not, we cant casually interfere. Last time, we insisted on persuading Mother to go save someone. Do you still remember the consequences?
When Da Bao said this, the little ones immediately lowered their heads.
In the end, it was because of them that their mother started to practice medicine and save people.
It was because they couldnt bear to see a sick grandmother abandoned, so they pestered their mother to save her. As a result, the trouble that followed was endless. Their mother became busier and busier, and the time she spent away from home became longer and longer.
After this lesson, the babies didnt dare to interfere in Mo Ruyues affairs anymore, for fear that their suggestions would cause new trouble for their mother.
Alright, stop peeking. Were not even halfway through todays revision. Mother is going to see the doctor tomorrow, and we have to go to ss. There are only a few days left until the end of the year exam. If any of you dont do well, dont say what Mother will think. Ill be the first to disagree!
As Da Bao spoke, he turned around and went back to his desk. He picked up a book and started reading.
The other four babies looked at each other and followed him back to the desk. Even if they couldnt calm down, they forced themselves to read the book.
Mo Ruyue was talking to the young master outside when she suddenly turned her head to look at the study. She had long heard the conversation between the babies.
It seemed that they still remembered the first time they urged her to save someone, but they ended up getting into trouble.
It was a good thing to learn from ones mistakes, but if one was overly cautious to the point of overstepping ones boundaries, then one would be harmed instead.
She had originally nned to reject the young master, but the conversation she had just heard made her change her mind. So she said to the young master, Alright, Ill make an exception and go with you. But remember, dont do it again. If theres a next time, dont me me for throwing you out.
The young master was already prepared to be rejected, but when he suddenly heard Mo Ruyues words, he was immediately stunned and had a look ofplete disbelief.
Qin Lady Qin, you really agree?
He asked carefully, afraid that he was dreaming.
If I were you, Id leave before I change my mind. Otherwise, itll be toote to regret it.
Mo Ruyue turned around and walked into the house as she spoke.
She needed to bring her first aid kit and inform her babies. Of course, thetter was her real purpose.
Mother, youre going with the young master?
San Bao had always been the first to speak, and this time was no exception.
Chapter 288 - 288 Chronic Heart Failure
288 Chronic Heart Failure
Yes, and I wont be back tonight. Ill go directly to Huichun Hall tomorrow morning. You guys stay at home and study well. Tomorrow, Grandpa Liu will pick you up. Im taking Big ck with me, so you guys can take the imperial carriage.
Mo Ruyue warned them, then turned around and left.
She didnt deliberately try to reason with the babies, but what she said just now actually had a deep meaning. If the babies could calm down and think about it, they would understand what she meant.
After that, Mo Ruyue went back to the room to get the first aid kit and then went to the stables to bring out the big ck horse. When she stood in front of the young master again, he still had note back to his senses.
Lets go, she said.
Now, it was Mo Ruyue who was urging the young master. It was this sentence that made hime back to his senses. He immediately nodded like a pecking rice and repeatedly responded, Yes, yes. Lets go.
He didnt use the carriage he had prepared and just hurriedly followed behind Mo Ruyue, heading in the direction of the county.
Although Mo Ruyue had been to Guani buildings many times, she had never known that the mansion behind the restaurant was the young masters home.
It was only the distance between the back door and the front door, only a street away.
The restaurant itself was located in the bustling area of the county, and thend here was naturally worth an inch of gold. To be able to upy such arge piece ofnd to build a mansion, the young masters family background was naturally extremely rich.
Mo Ruyue looked at the que hanging on the gate of the mansion. On it were tworge words: Bai Manor.
Young Master, I just remembered that weve known each other for so long, but I still dont know your full name.
She turned around to look at the young master. She only knew that his surname was Bai, but she was used to calling him young master, so she had never asked for his full name.
Lady Qin, my full name is Bai Shiyuan, and my sisters name is Bai Shijiao,
The young master answered as he led Mo Ruyue inside.
The two of them only saw the servants rushing by. Even when they saw the young master returning with a woman, they only hurriedly bowed and left. They didnt even see Mo Ruyues face clearly.
Bai Shijiao, pampered for a hundred generations. Thats a pretty good name.
Mo Ruyue casually said. From this name, it could be seen that this youngdy of the Bai family was very favored.
Thats right, my younger sister is fourteen years younger than me, and can be considered a child of my parents at an old age. She has been pampered since she was young, and she doesnt even dare to give the moon or the stars. Thats why my mother was so shocked when she saw my younger sister like that and was bedridden.
Bai Shiyuan sighed and tried his best to answer Mo Ruyues questions.
Fourteen years old? How old is she this year?
Mo Ruyue sized up Bai Shiyuan. He looked to be around twenty years old. Since Bai Shijiao was fourteen years younger than him, she should not be too old.
My younger sister is thirteen this year, and will be of marriageable age next year.
Bai Shiyuan had just finished speaking when he looked up and saw his parents room. He immediately said to Mo Ruyue, Lady Qin, this is my mothers room. Because she is sick, my father temporarily moved to aunts house. This ce is left for my mother to recuperate in peace.
Please take a look at her first. The situation is urgent now, so I can only ask my mother toe first.
Mo Ruyue nodded and then stepped into the door. However, as soon as she entered, she frowned.
Even though the entire room was filled with the strong smell of Chinese medicine, she was still keenly aware of a strange fragrance.
The fragrance was very greasy and sweet at first, but after smelling it for a long time, one would feel dizzy and nauseated. Then, the fragrance would turn into an unpleasant smell.
Because Mo Ruyues five senses were extremely sharp, the process from the fragrance to the stench was extremely short, so it raised her vignce.
However, she had yet toe into contact with the patient. Before confirming the patients condition, she would not easily express any opinions.
Lady Qin, is there something wrong?
Bai Shiyuan, who was following behind her, immediately saw the expression on Mo Ruyues face and immediately asked.
Although patients need to be kept warm, they also need to pay attention to venttion. This room has been suffocated for a long time, and it smells rotten. How can it be beneficial to the patients recovery?
Ah, right, right, Lady Qin is right. Ill ask people to open the windows for venttion.
Bai Shiyuan immediately wanted to call for help but was stopped by Mo Ruyue.
Wait, young master, youre really impatient. Even if you want to get some air, you should wait until Ive checked the patient, right?
Mo Ruyues words did not mean to me Bai Shiyuan. On the contrary, she could now understand his feelings of being in a mess because of himself. So, besides wanting to keep the evidence for the time being, those words were also a simple reminder to him.
At this time, Bai Shiyuans face was already red. Although he was almost about to run into third year, was six or seven years older than Mo Ruyues original body, and was also the young master of the restaurant, he was now as ill-at-ease as a seventeen or eighteen-year-old teenager.
He originally wanted to help, but he didnt expect to almost make things worse.
Young Master, Ill have to trouble you to wait outside the screen. Ill go check on your mothers condition.
Mo Ruyue did not waste time on unimportant matters. She greeted Bai Shiyuan directly and went behind the screen.
She had once treated the wife of the county magistrate, Chen Luyu, Madam Du. However, even though the county magistrate held an official position, in terms of wealth, he was far inferior to the Bai family.
Madam Bais bed had been carved out of sandalwood.
As for sandalwood, Mo Ruyue remembered that in her previous life, there was a giant white sandalwood Buddha in the Yonghe Pce in the imperial capital. It was 26 meters tall and 3 meters wide. It was carved from an entire sandalwood tree. It was an unparalleled art treasure.
From this, one could imagine how high the value of sandalwood products was, and it was not difficult to guess how rich the Bai family was.
It was just that the Bai family seemed to be living a quiet and low-key life in Guani building. If it wasnt someone who was invited to be a guest, they wouldnt have noticed that such a rich man was hidden by their side.
However, this had nothing to do with Mo Ruyue. She saw through it but didnt say anything. She just started to check on Madam Bais condition.
From her pulse, Madam Bais pulse came quickly, had an irregr rhythm, and would rpse every now and then, like a bird pecking at her food. This was a sign of her bad temper, which was moremon in rheumatic heart disease, coronary heart disease, and myocardial infarction.
Young Master, how is your mothers health? Does she have symptoms such as chest tightness, shortness of breath, convulsing, nightmares, and so on?
Mo Ruyue asked the person outside the screen without turning back.
My mother has always been in good health. Although she would asionally have a headache and fever, she has never been seriously ill. Thats why this illness came in such a menacing manner that my father and I were caught off guard, and we were particrly frightened and helpless.
Bai Shiyuans answer also added some evidence to Mo Ruyues guess, allowing her to have a rough idea of what was going on.
After a series of examinations, Mo Ruyue came to the conclusion that Madam Bai was suffering from a chronic heart failure and had symptoms of a heart attack. If she had not returned with Bai Shiyuan today, Madam Bai would not have been able to make it through the night.
...
Chapter 289 - 289 The Patient’s First Patient
289 The Patients First Patient
Therefore, Mo Ruyue immediately gave Madam Bai a heart-saving pill that she had specially concocted. At the same time, she also gave her a cardiac stimnt to help Madam Bais heart regain its power.
All of the medicines that Mo Ruyue had specially concocted had been added with the spring water of the space. He had also made some simple adjustments to the prescription. Compared to the variousmon medicines, the effect was naturally much stronger.
Seeing that Madam Bai looked much better after taking the medicine, Mo Ruyue walked out from behind the screen. She walked to the table and started to write a prescription. As she wrote, she said, Young Master, you have to get the prescription yourself and bring it back for me to see. You cant let anyone else do it.
Lady Qin, you are worried that someone will be ridiculed?
!!
After all, Bai Shiyuan was the young master of a rich family. He was not unfamiliar with the shady matters in the back residence. When he heard Mo Ruyue say this, he immediately asked in surprise.
However, before he could finish his sentence, he automatically silenced himself. He only used his gaze toplete the second half of his sentence.
This has always been my habit. Young Master, you also know that as doctors, sometimes we may step into other peoples traps if we are not careful, so we can only try to avoid it ourselves.
Mo Ruyue felt that now was not the time toy her cards on the table, so she casually found an excuse to brush it off.
Bai Shiyuan did not continue to ask. He knew that Mo Ruyue was a very calm and astute person. If she did not want to say it, no one could force her to say it.
So he just followed Mo Ruyues request and took the prescription she wrote to get the medicine personally.
Before Bai Shiyuan returned, Mo Ruyue returned to Madam Bais side and brought the unconscious Madam Bai into the medium. He used the medical equipment to perform a full body examination on her.
The results of the examination were in line with her judgment. With Madam Bais health, it was indeed abnormal for her to have such heart failure and myocardial infarction.
ording to Bai Shiyuan, after Bai Shijiao showed symptoms of overgrowth, Madam Bai had fallen into a serious state of mental anxiety.
Long-term mental anxiety would cause the body to be in a state of excitement for a long time, causing the sympathetic nerves to be over-excited, which would increase the chances of high blood pressure, coronary heart disease, cardiovascr and cerebrovascr diseases, high blood cholesterol, and diabetes.
Therefore, the cause of Madam Bais heart failure was her daughters illness, and the other part was due to other external factors.
Mo Ruyues entrance and exit of the space happened in an instant, so no one noticed the abnormality behind the screen.
Very soon, Bai Shiyuan returned with the medicine that he had grabbed, along with Mo Ruyues little assistant, Dong Qing.
This was also what Mo Ruyue had specifically instructed him to do when he left.
Dong Qing is someone Im used to using. Sometimes, I dont need to tell him anything, and hell do what he needs to do. With him around, I can save a lot of time. After all, I still have to go see your sisterter.
The reason given by Mo Ruyue was reasonable, but Bai Shiyuan felt that Mo Ruyue was also guarding against the people around his mother. Could there really be a mole in his mothers room?
After carefully looking at the medicine that Bai Shiyuan had brought back, Mo Ruyue handed the medicine to Dong Qing and said, Theres a way to boil it in the prescription. Do it ording to the prescription and feed it to Madam when the medicine is warm. You dont have to rely on others.
Yes, Madam Qin, I will remember.
After Dong Qing responded, he immediately took out a small y pot from the medicine box he carried with him. This was a pot specially customized for boiling medicine ording to Mo Ruyues request.
All the patients who had been treated by her and needed to take the medicine would have a special medicine pot, and she would never mix it with others.
The cost of the jar itself wasnt high, and Mo Ruyue had made it clear that her rule wouldnt change. Unless it was a truly poor person who would waive the cost and Mo Ruyue would bear it, the others would bear the cost of the treatment.
Bai Shiyuan also knew about Mo Ruyues rule. If it was in the past, he wouldnt have thought much of it, but now it seemed that he couldnt help but sigh at Lady Qins foresight. Just this small special medicine pot could prevent many conspiracies from happening.
Alright, Young Master, you dont have to worry about your mothers matters for now. Leave this side to Dong Qing. He is a professional medicine boy, so he would take care of her more carefully than a personal maidservant. Now, lets go take a look at your sisters condition?
Mo Ruyue had already understood Madam Bais condition. Now, she only needed to take a look at Bai Shijiaos condition and she would be able toe to a conclusion.
Doesnt Lady Qin need to rest for a while?
Bai Shiyuan asked with concern.
After all, Mo Ruyue had rushed over on horseback. After arriving, she had immediately diagnosed his mother without resting. It had been more than an hour now. If she wanted to rest, it was possible.
No need. Its better to quickly grasp your sisters condition so that I can start the treatment earlier.
What Mo Ruyue needed now was not rest, but to find out about Bai Shijiaos condition as soon as possible. This was not an isted illness, and there was an inevitable connection between the mother and daughter.
Alright, since Lady Qin said so, then lets go now.
Bai Shiyuan had all sorts of spections in his heart. However, since his sisters condition was still unknown, it was better to put the patients condition first. Everything else could wait.
Bai Shijiaos courtyard was right next to her parents, separated by a garden. It would take five to six minutes to walk there.
This time, Bai Shiyuan did not follow them into the house. Instead, he took the initiative to wait outside the house.
Although Bai Shijiao was not yet of marriageable age, she was only one year away from her. On the other hand, Bai Shiyuan was a married adult male. ording to the rules, it was taboo for him to enter his sisters bedroom.
Lady Qin, Ill be outside the door. If you need anything, just call me.
Although Bai Shiyuan was standing outside the door and enjoying the cold wind, how could the servants in the residence allow their young master to be frozen? They had immediately sent over thicker capes, Earbags, and even hand stoves.
This kind of extravagance was something that even the average rich family wouldnt have, which further showed that the Bai familys background was not ordinary.
Who is Young Miss personal maidservant?
Mo Ruyue asked before entering.
Ling Qiao was sent away by Mother a month ago, saying that she did not serve Jiaojiao well enough, so she allowed her condition to worsen. The maidservant by Jiaojiaos side now is called Qi Qiao, and shes my Mothers aide.
As Bai Shiyuan was speaking, a beautiful girl of about fifteen or sixteen years old pushed the door open and walked out of the house. When she saw the two of them standing outside the door, she was stunned and quickly saluted, Greetings to Young Master, greetings to
She hesitated for a moment, clearly not knowing how to address Mo Ruyue.
Lady Qin, this is Qi Qiao. Qi Qiao, this is Lady Qin, who is here to diagnose Miss.
Bai Shiyuan gave a simple introduction.
Lady Qin, youre Lady Qin?
The girl called Qi Qiaos eyes brightened. She immediately walked over and grabbed Mo Ruyues hand tightly. Lady Qin, I know youre a divine doctor recognized by the imperial court. I beg you, you must save our young miss!
Mo Ruyue shook her wrist slightly and shook Qi Qiaos hand away. She did not like physical contact with people other than her babies.
Come with me, I still have something to ask you.
Chapter 290 - 290 Determining The Cause
290 Determining The Cause
As she spoke, she walked past Qi Qiao and went straight into Bai Shijiaos room. Qi Qiao hurriedly bowed to Bai Shiyuan and returned to her room.
After Mo Ruyue went in, she sniffed carefully but did not find the strange fragrance that had appeared in Madam Bais room.
As usual, she went to Bai Shijiaos bedside and began to do a full body examination.
Bai Shijiaos pulse also showed signs of heart failure. It was most likely caused by excessive weight and long-term mental anxiety. Perhaps it was because there was no external cause, her heart failure was not as serious as Madam Bais.
Mo Ruyue could easily tell that Bai Shijiaos obesity was caused by arge number of hormones. However, she still had to ask Qi Qiao a few more questions about the specific hormones.
Qi Qiao, did your miss eat any special ingredients or traditional Chinese medicine before she gained weight?
Mo Ruyue called Qi Qiao to her side and asked.
Lady Qin, I only came to Miss side a month ago. Ling Qiao is the one who knows the most about what happened before. However, Madam said that she didnt serve Miss well and wasnt suitable to stay by Miss side, so she sent her to another manor.
If Lady Qin wants to know about the previous matter, then we can only ask Young Master to go to the other manor to bring the person back. However, I can tell you everything that has happened in the past month.
Before you took over taking care of Bai Shijiao, why didnt you find out more about her condition?
Mo Ruyue raised an eyebrow. No matter how she thought about it, she felt that this was just an excuse.
You may not know this, but Young Miss had previously urged Madam to strictly forbid us servants from finding out about Young Miss past. Thats why Ling Qiao didnt say anything before she left, and this servant didnt dare to ask.
Qi Qiaos fear did not seem to be faked. Mo Ruyue could clearly hear the sound of her heart beating violently and could also smell the subtle changes in her pheromones.
This was clearly her most genuine reaction, and not an act for her to see.
Mo Ruyue suddenly had a strange feeling. Even without the help of a lie detector, she could now clearly tell whether a person was lying or not.
Some people were so good at lying that they could even fool machines. However, no matter how good they were at disguising themselves, they could not control the most basic physiological changes in their bodies.
When Mo Ruyues five senses were sensitive to a certain extent, they could even reach a wonderful state of minute details. This was an experience she had never experienced before, so she naturally found it very novel.
Qi Qiao thought that Mo Ruyue did not believe her and quickly swore, Lady Qin, everything this servant said is true. If theres even half a lie, let this servant fall into the infernal hell after death and never reincarnate!
Mo Ruyue knew that she had misunderstood her because she had been distracted. She didnt exin and said indifferently, Theres no need to swear an oath. Im not here to pry into the Bai familys privacy. Im here to save someone.
Then, tell me about Bai Shijiaos eating habits for the past month and what medicine shes been taking.
Recently, Miss has been eating big fish and meat non-stop, and the taste is extremely strong. The more seasoning the dishes have, the more she likes it. However, our Miss spleen and stomach are weak. She cant digest so much food at all, so she often has bloating. Her stomach is as round as a watermelon, and she always grumbles in pain. But even so, she still cant change her gluttonous habit.
In order to recuperate her spleen, Miss often eats arrowroot. I heard that arrowroot is very effective, so her desserts always have some arrowroot cake and arrowroot powder.
Oh, by the way, Miss had an illness before. After that, she has been in a state of qi and blood deficiency. So, in order to replenish her qi and blood, she even asked a doctor to give her a prescription.
Qi Qiao quickly told Mo Ruyue everything she knew.
Let me see the doctors prescription.
When Mo Ruyue heard that Bai Shijiao aterge amounts of Gegen Powder every day, she more or less knew what was going on.
Although the root of kudzu vine was a good medicine for treating weak tempers, it also contained arge amount of estrogen. If one ate it often, it would cause the estrogen in the body to soar, which would cause endocrine disorders.
One of the major symptoms of endocrine disorders was the sudden increase in weight.
Qi Qiao brought the prescription over to her as she was making her deductions.
Mo Ruyue took the prescription and looked at it. She was immediately caught by the Angelicas dosage.
There was nock of Angelica in the prescription for replenishing qi and blood, but if Angelica was used in excess, it would also cause a great appetite.
If that was the case, it would be fine to be careful not to eat oily food. However, Bai Shijiaos diet was high in oil and salt, which led to the opposite effect. It further caused the hormone content in Bai Shijiaos body to exceed the limit, making it more difficult for her to control her weight.
You should have Bai Shijiaos recipe for this month, right? Write me a detailed list of the dishes she usually eats, including pastries and so on.
Mo Ruyue made a third request.
This was not a difficult task for Qi Qiao. As Bai Shijiaos personal maidservant and someone who was Madam Bais aide, she was naturally familiar with such tasks.
Soon, she wrote down a recipe that was actually five to six pages long. No matter if it was the dishes or the pastries, they were all the same.
Mo Ruyue took the menu and read it carefully.
She quickly went through the menu of every dish in her mind and found that these dishes more or less had some seasoning or ingredients that stimted the appetite.
Qi Qiao, is this recipe a continuation of the previous recipe, or will it be changed regrly?
Mo Ruyue asked onest question.
Lady Qin, unless our miss really loves a dish, she wont eat it several times. Most of the time, shell get tired of it after eating it once, so her recipes change at any time. It hasnt changed even after so many years.
Sure enough, she was spoiled by a rich family. Just the fact that she cooked new dishes every day was not something that ordinary families could afford, not even ordinary rich families.
Qi Qiaos answer had already made Mo Ruyuee to a conclusion. She did not start treating Bai Shijiao. Instead, she walked out of the door and waved for Bai Shiyuan, who was waiting outside, toe over.
Lady Qin, have you seen my younger sister? Hows her condition? Is there any possibility of recovery?
Bai Shiyuan did not wait for Mo Ruyue to speak and immediately asked three questions.
Yes, Ive finished reading it and Ive found out the cause of the illness. But before I exin it to you, I still have a few questions to ask you. Is there a ce where we can talk?
When Mo Ruyue asked this, Bai Shiyuan immediately understood that this was to prevent the walls from hearing them.
Bai Shiyuan led Mo Ruyue to the study room at the side. This was where Bai Shijiao received her private tutors lessons. Although the decorations inside looked very clean and simple, if one looked closely at the calligraphy and paintings hanging on the wall, they were all the works of famous masters.
Chapter 291 - 291 The Mole
291 The Mole
From a full set of mahogany furniture to a small pen town, all of them were exquisite items.
Bai Shiyuan ordered his attendant to bring tea and pastries before dismissing the servants. Only he and Mo Ruyue were left in the room, and no one was allowed toe within five steps of the room.
After all the preventive measures were in ce, he sat down and said to Mo Ruyue, Lady Qin, theres only you and me now. If you have anything, just ask and say it.
Alright, what I want to ask is, does the Bai family have any enemies?
Mo Ruyue didnt waste any words and asked directly.
Lady Qin, my Bai family is in the restaurant business. Im sure youve heard of the saying that people in the same trade are enemies. As for the other enemies There are some.
Bai Shiyuan also gave a definite answer, but he did not go into details.
Mo Ruyue had no intention of interfering in the Bai familys private affairs. It was enough to know that he had enemies in addition to hispetitors.
Ive checked your sisters condition just now. I can say with certainty that theres a mole in your house, Young Master. Both of their conditions have been designedyer byyer, and there are multiple triggers for them to lead to this result.
As expected! Its really like that!
Bai Shiyuan mmed the table and stood up. His thick eyebrows were raised, and his eyes were wide with anger. He could not hold back his anger and shouted.
He saw that Mo Ruyue had been reluctant to tell him the cause of the illness and had even asked some meaningful questions. He had long been suspicious in his heart. Now that he had really heard her say this and confirmed his suspicion, anger suddenly rose in his heart. He couldnt wait to find the mole right now.
From the looks of it, your sisters condition isnt the most serious. On the contrary, your mothers condition has already reached a critical state. To be honest, if you hadnt insisted on inviting me over today, your mother wouldnt have talked to me at midnight.
Mo Ruyue threw out another piece of shocking news, shocking Bai Shiyuan so much that his body trembled, and he only managed to stabilize himself after shaking twice.
What How could this be? How did this happen?
Of course, he had also seen that his mothers condition was not good, so he had rushed to find Mo Ruyue, but he had never thought that the situation would be so critical to this extent. While he broke out in a cold sweat, he was also extremely d that Mo Ruyue had made an exception for his Bai family.
In Bai Shiyuans heart, he did not doubt at all whether Mo Ruyue was taking the opportunity to ask for a favor. With her medical skills, there was no need for this. With the imperial courtsmendation, the continuous operations, and the diagnosis and treatment of all kinds of difficult and misceneous diseases, Mo Ruyue was now a world-famous divine doctor. She did not need to rely on lies to raise her own status.
Ive just carefullypared your sisters diet and found that whether its the traditional Chinese medicine she uses to strengthen her spleen and blood, or every dish in her diet, there are either excessive hormones or arge number of ingredients or seasonings that stimte her appetite.
In addition, your sisters long-term anxiety will also lead to gluttony and endocrine disorder, which will lead to a surge in weight. And your sisters condition is one of the causes of your mothers sudden heart failure and myocardial infarction.
Although Bai Shiyuan could not understand some of the technical terms in Mo Ruyues words, there was one thing he could understand. Thus, after pondering for a moment, he asked, What Lady Qin means is that my younger sisters illness is to lure out my mothers mental illness, so my mother is the real truth behind the mole?
Mo Ruyue nodded approvingly. Thats right. The young master is indeed very intelligent. Youve seen through it with just a little hint.
After all, Bai Shiyuan was the future heir of a super-rich family, so it was easy andfortable tomunicate with him. She did not need to exin too much, and he could urately understand her meaning.
I didnte to this conclusion based on this point alone. Just now, I smelled a strange fragrance in your mothers room. That smell is sweet and alluring at first, but after smelling it for a long time, it will make people dizzy and nauseated. In the end, it will turn into a pungent smell.
That smell is the second cause of your mothers heart failure. Because it appeared in her room, no one else would have the chance to do so except for the people around her. And I specte that the smell appeared in your mothers room for no less than two months.
Mo Ruyueid out the basis of her deduction one by one. This way, if Bai Shiyuan felt that her words were not enough to be believed, he could still use the evidence of her deduction to verify it elsewhere.
No wonder. You were caught off guard.
Bai Shiyuan gritted his teeth and said, My mother has always been in good health. Even if she asionally gets a cold, she can recover without taking any medicine. This time, the illness came in full force. I thought that my mother was worried about my younger sisters condition and couldnt eat or sleep well, causing her to fall sick. I didnt expect that the two of them were harmed by evil people!
The more he thought about it, the angrier and more regretful he became. As he spoke, his eyes were already filled with tears.
They were shocked and angry because the Bai family had always been low-key and did many good deeds. They didnt expect that they didnt even realize that someone had already taken advantage of them.
What he regretted was that his mother and sister had been schemed against long ago. As a son and brother, not only did he not notice it, but he also treated it as an ordinary illness. This time, if he did not invite Lady Qin, how could he have known such a thunderous news!
Young Master, I dont care who the mole in your house is, why he has a grudge with others, or how you want to solve this matter. All I can do now is tell you what I have seen and inferred. The key is still what you and your father want to do.
Mo Ruyues words caused Bai Shiyuan to turn his head to look at her. He asked excitedly, Lady Qin, you mean, you can cure my mother and my sister?
Although Mo Ruyue didnt say it clearly, he was still keenly aware of the meaning behind her words.
Since I can say it, I can naturally do it. However, it is impossible for me to stay in your Bai family to take care of you all day long. If there is nopletely reliable person to serve you, even if I have the right medicine and treatment n, Im afraid that in the end, not only will I not be able to cure the mother and daughters illness, but I will also be used as a scapegoat.
Mo Ruyue said the ugly words first. If Bai Shiyuan could note up with a solution that could make her feel at ease, even if she could cure the mother and daughter, she would not easily take action.
After all, she didnt know who the mole was at all. It waspletely a situation where the enemy was in the dark while she was out in the open. Therefore, out of an attitude of protecting herself, she would definitely not make a move easily.
Yes, yes, I can fully understand Lady Qins concerns.
Bai Shiyuan also nodded repeatedly, acknowledging Mo Ruyues words. He then made a request.
How about this, didnt Lady Qin tell the babies that she wouldnt go back tonight? Then please stay here for the night. Before you leave tomorrow morning, I will definitelye up with a n that will make you feel at ease.
Did Lady Qin really say that?
After hearing his sons words, the Bai familys master, Bai Jinshangs face became serious.
Although her daughters condition seemed to be excusable, it did not seem to be that simple after careful observation. However, the most important thing now was to quickly cure the mother and daughters illness. Naturally, they had to find the mole.
His wifes illness had already reached a critical point. He couldnt wait to slowly find the mole, so he could only do two things at once.
Since Lady Qin wants a peaceful environment, then we will give her a peaceful environment.
Chapter 292 - 292 Speaking Without Thinking
292 Speaking Without Thinking
Bai Jin Shang quickly thought of a countermeasure and immediately sent people to gather everyone in his wife and daughters room and courtyard. He then announced a new rule.
In the future, the people on duty in the madams and miss room and courtyard would have to work in groups of three to monitor each other. Every day, they had to record the days schedule, prepare food, and bring medicinal soup. The dregs and food residue were left for inspection. After the shift ended, the three of them would sign at the same time.
Apart from a few servants and old women who looked at each other and didnt know what had happened, the servant girls and old women who were close to him were all smart people. They immediately understood that there was a mole in the family and the master was investigating.
Everyone lowered their heads and did not dare to look at the people around them, for fear of getting suspected again.
The Bai familys father and son nced around and only saw ck heads. They couldnt see anything for the time being, but their purpose of alerting the enemy had been achieved.
No matter who the mole was, it would be very difficult to make a move in the future. There was still the possibility of the two colluding, but the three of them were monitoring each other, and in the end, they had to take action together. It was destined that no one could escape the eyes of a third person.
Mo Ruyue was arranged to stay in the best guest room in the Bai manor. Although there was some distance between them, she could still hear the movementsing from the main courtyard.
She had no objection to the arrangement of the father and son of the Bai family. This should only be the means on the surface. The father and son of the Bai family would definitely arrange for secret guards to monitor her in the dark. This should be what Bai Shiyuan had said, giving her a satisfactory answer.
The next morning, Bai Shiyuan came over personally to tell Mo Ruyue about this arrangement, exactly as she had thoughtst night.
In that case, I can rest assured to treat your cousin and sister. I will also check and test the food residue and dregs every day. If someone still tampered with the food, we can trace it back from the records of that day.
At the same time, Mo Ruyue also added another request. That was, she woulde here every day to finish the treatment and leave immediately. She would never stay overnight in the residence.
In this case, I will send a carriage to pick up Lady Qin every day, so that you dont have to work too hard.
Although there was still some distance between the Qin Vige and the county, it would only take about an hour to go back and forth by carriage.
Bai Shiyuan was already prepared to instruct the servants to modify the carriage, toy more soft nkets and pillows, and to upgrade the Baldhino. Of course, he also had to prepare tea and pastries boxes, various candied fruits, and so on.
In short, thefort of Mo Ruyues ride must be the first priority. Only then could she live up to the hard work of running back and forth in the cold wind every day.
Theres no need for that. If I have the time to hang around on the road, I cane to see him earlier or go home earlier. I just need to ride Big ck back and forth.
Mo Ruyue politely declined. The carriage was really a waste of her time. Big ck was more convenient.
Bai Shiyuan saw that Mo Ruyue did not like such a grand disy, so he did not say much. As long as she was willing toe and treat his mother and sisters illness every day, he would be extremely grateful.
Dong Qing also stayed at the Bai manorst night. Mo Ruyue asked him to go to Huichun Hall to report that she would bete, and then they began the treatment for the mother and daughter of the Bai family today.
Both of them had to undergo acupuncture treatment. However, Madam Bais condition was more serious, so the acupuncture time was longer.
Madam Bai had woken up before the treatment had even started. Considering her current physical condition, the father and son of the Bai family did not tell her the truth of the matter. They only said that they had invited Mo Ruyue to treat the mother and daughter and asked her to rx and recuperate to cooperate with the treatment.
Madam Bai was also very convinced of Mo Ruyues medical skills. When she heard that Mo Ruyue was here to treat the mother and daughter, her eyebrows immediately rxed. The first thing she said was, Lady Qin, its been hard on you. You must cure my daughters illness. As long as you can cure her, Im willing to do anything and pay any price!
Madam Bai, youd better take care of your own health first. Otherwise, if something happens to you, your daughter wont feel good either. It will also aggravate her condition.
Although Mo Ruyues tone was light, she also felt the same in her heart.
This was the heart of all parents. Although there were parents who abandoned and abused their children, there were more parents who loved and protected their children. As long as it was for the good of their children, they would do anything.
Madam Bai nodded her head repeatedly and cooperated with Mo Ruyues treatment with ease.
After Mo Ruyues acupuncture, Bai Shijiao had also woken up. However, when she woke up and saw a stranger in the room, she began to shout at Mo Ruyue angrily, regardless of her grogginess and weakness when she first woke up.
You can leave first. Let me have a few words with the youngdy alone.
Mo Ruyue wasnt angry and only said this to the maidservants in the room.
When there were only the two of them left in the room, Mo Ruyue looked down at her with her arms crossed and said, I dont care if youre ady from a wealthy family or how much youve been pampered by your family. Youre my patient now, so you have to cooperate with my treatment.
If you have anyints about me, you can ask your father and brother to drive me away, but dont try to invite me to treat your illness again. There wont be a second time.
This was the second time Mo Ruyue hade into contact with such a rich youngdy. She didnt know if it was because of her illness or if it was because of her spoiled personality, but no matter what the reason was, it wasnt good to act like a youngdy here.
Before Bai Shijiao fell ill, she had been pampered by the people around her. After she fell ill, she gained a lot of weight, which made her temper even worse. She could not even bear to see any rebellious attitude, let alone Mo Ruyue, who scolded her so directly.
Get lost now! I dont want you to treat me. Who knows what kind of fraud you are? Get lost!
When Bai Shijiao shouted, Mo Ruyue did not get angry. Instead, she smiled and nodded slightly. Very good, she said.
Just as she was about to leave with her medical kit, she heard Bai Shiyuans angry voice from outside the door, Bai Shijiao, shut up!
The door opened with a bang. It sounded like Bai Shiyuan had kicked it open in a moment of desperation. He strode over and directly blocked Mo Ruyues path.
Lady Qin, my younger sister is still young.
He hadnt finished speaking when he was interrupted by Mo Ruyue.
Young Master, your sister is already thirteen years old this year and will be of marriageable age next year. Dont you feel embarrassed to tell me that she is still young? Although her illness may lead to a bad temper, I cant afford to take care of a patient like her. You should find someone else.
Mo Ruyues temper was not good. Although she had restrained herself a lot recently, that was also because of her rtionship with the babies. But to outsiders, she did not have a good temper.
Lady Qin, Lady Qin, please stop, please listen to me for a few more words.
The moment Bai Shiyuan heard that his sister had started to chase him away after she woke up, he rushed over in a hurry. He was afraid that she would offend Mo Ruyue with her words.
Chapter 293 - 293 Visiting
293 Visiting
He didnt expect to hear his sister telling Mo Ruyue to get lost as soon as he reached the door. This scared him out of his wits and he immediately scolded her.
He had gone through so much trouble to invite Mo Ruyue to treat her. Now, because of this sentence, all his efforts were going to be in vain. How could he not be angry?
Young Master, you should leave your words for your sister to hear. I still have other patients to see, so Ill have to leave you for now.
Mo Ruyue had no intention of giving Bai Shiyuan any face at all. Things like understanding the patients emotions and such did not exist for her.
If the devilish child wanted to throw a tantrum, then he could throw a tantrum at her rtives and servants. She was only responsible for treating the illness, not taking care of the child.
Seeing that Mo Ruyue had left, Bai Shiyuan knew that it would be useless even if he chased after her. Now, it would be as difficult as ascending to the heavens to invite Mo Ruyue back.
Bai Shiyuan turned around and went back to Bai Shijiaos room in a huff. As for how the siblingsmunicated, Mo Ruyue had no idea and would not care.
She had just arrived at Huichun Hall, and there was a long line at the door.
Lady Qin, these people have been waiting for you for a long time. Before this, we even said that we didnt know when you woulde and advised them to line up with other doctors, but not a single one went. Your ability is more recognized.
The person who spoke was also a doctor from Huichun Hall. He wasnt supposed to be on duty today, but he had received news that Mo Ruyue might not be able toe, so he had speciallye to take over. He didnt expect that those patients would rather wait than wait for Mo Ruyue.
He was only speaking in a weird tone out of jealousy.
If you have the time to talk, read a few more medical books. Maybe youll have the ability to be recognized.
Mo Ruyue had juste out of the Bai manor, and she was already a little angry. This doctor was also unlucky to have directly bumped into the muzzle of her gun, and his face turned red with a single sentence.
Those who could give medical services in Huichun Hall had some real ability, but with a bright moon like Mo Ruyue, they couldnt show their ability.
So if it was someone else who scolded him like this, perhaps the doctor would still have the confidence to refute. But after Mo Ruyue said this, no matter how unwilling he was, he had to grit his teeth and endure it.
Mo Ruyue didnt bother with him. After sitting down, he began to call numbers and began to treat others.
When she left, she didnt bring Dong Qing with her. Instead, she left him by Madam Bais side. After all, Madam Bai had not said anything rude, so she was still her patient.
The morning passed by quickly, and it was time for lunch break at noon. The people who were queuing outside had temporarily dispersed to rest, and they would continue when the clinic opened in the afternoon.
Huichun Hall provided three meals a day, and the food was very good. Mo Ruyue was about to enjoy her lunch when she saw Imperial Doctor Tian walking over.
Lady Qin, this old man is treating you to lunch today, can youe along?
Treat? Could it be that Elder Tian wants to treat us to a meal at Guani building?
Mo Ruyues words stunned Imperial Doctor Tian. He immediately smiled and said, No, its my old wife who has prepared some wine and food at home. This old man wants to invite Lady Qins family for a chat. After all, you still have to go home in the evening, so we can only hold the invitation in the afternoon.
His words also stunned Mo Ruyue. Then she realized that she had wrongly used a good person and immediately apologized, Im sorry, Elder Tian. I thought Anyway, Im very sorry.
Its fine, its fine. Then Ill take it that Lady Qin has epted my invitation?
Imperial Doctor Tian said with a smile.
He didnt intend to ask Mo Ruyue about the reason for her attitude just now. It didnt matter even if she misunderstood him. After all, she had already realized this and took the initiative to apologize. That was enough.
Mo Ruyue immediately got up and took the big medicine box that she always carried with her. As for her lunch, because it was untouched, someone would clean it up and give it to the beggars outside, along with the remaining food in Huichun Hall.
The two of them sat in Imperial Doctor Tians carriage and returned to the Tian family together.
Although Imperial Doctor Tian had retired from the pce and returned to his hometown, his sry and rewards over the years were not less. However, the operating room built in Huichun Hall had cost him more than half of his fortune. In addition, he had always been low-key and thrifty, so the entire Tian mansion looked extremely simple and in.
It was just a double-entry courtyard, and the servants at home were all old people who had been used to it for many years. Only Madam Tian had two young maidservants by her side, and the total number of people in the entire mansion did not exceed ten.
Elder Tian, why dont I see any of your other family members in the residence?
This was Mo Ruyues first time visiting the Tian residence as a guest. She immediately realized that there seemed to be only Imperial Doctor Tian and his wife in the house.
My son passed the imperial examination and went on to be an official. He was sent out to be a county magistrate. My daughter-inw took my grandson and granddaughter to follow him to his post, and we can only see each other once every few years. My daughter has already been married to a family in the capital. It is a long journey and one fear that we will not be able to see each other.
Imperial Doctor Tian sighed, his words unable to conceal a trace of heartache.
Even though they had both a son and a daughter, they still needed the two elders to support each other and rely on each other for survival.
Aiya, Lady Qin, youre finally here. My husband has been wanting to invite you over for a long time. See, he only has this opportunity today.
A kind old woman walked over. Although she was already old, one could still see the charm of the past between her brows.
This is my old wife, Madam Lin. If you dont mind, you can her Aunt Tian. In the future, you can call me Uncle Tian.
Since Imperial Doctor Tian had said so, Mo Ruyue immediately changed her words, Uncle Tian, Aunt Tian.
Soon, the three of them arrived at the reception Pavilion. A few dishes were already ced on the table. They were all ordinary home-cooked dishes, but they were also very exquisite and tempting. It seemed that Madam Tian was also a master chef.
However, only Imperial Doctor Tian and Mo Ruyue entered the flower hall. Madam Tian stopped at the entrance of the flower hall.
Lady Qin, you and Old Tian can eat first. Theres still a soup in the kitchen, I have to go and watch over it.
After she finished speaking, she smiled at Mo Ruyue and turned to leave.
Mo Ruyue knew that this was just an excuse. Elder Tian probably had something to say to her, and it was not convenient to talk in Huichun Hall, so he called her home.
After the two of them sat down, Imperial Doctor Tian attentively invited Mo Ruyue to eat. He even personally scooped a bowl of rice and ced it beside Mo Ruyues hand.
This dish tastes really good. Aunt Tians cooking skills are really extraordinary.
Mo Ruyue picked up a piece of scrambled egg with Chinese leeks and immediately praised it.
In fact, to see whether a persons cooking skills were really good, it wasnt about his knife skills, but whether he could make the simplest dishes delicious.
Mo Ruyue was a good cook and a gourmet. So, she could immediately tell that Madam Tian was a true master of cooking just from this mouthful of food.
Chapter 294 - 294 Apology
294 Apology
Hehe, Im not boasting, but my wifes cooking is indeed superb. After Im used to her cooking, I feel like Im chewing on wax no matter what kind of delicious food I eat. Since Lady Qin thinks this dish is not bad, then eat more.
Imperial Doctor Tian said with a face full of smiles.
From his eyes, one could see that the smile was real, and the pride of being proud of his wife was also real. It could be seen that the couple had a deep rtionship, and with decades of mutual support, they were indeed each others soul partners.
Mo Ruyues eyes shed with a touch of sadness.
!!
She once had a person who could be her soul partner, but they were eventually lost in the torrent of time and space. If only he could also transmigrate to this world
Mo Ruyue shook her head slightly and wanted to dispel that thought, but a figure inexplicably appeared in his mind.
That person always gave her a familiar feeling, but it was clearly not the face she was familiar with.
How was that possible?
How was that possible!
Lady Qin, Lady Qin? Are you alright?
A series of calls brought Mo Ruyue back to her senses. Seeing Imperial Doctor Tians worried look, Mo Ruyue immediately replied apologetically, Im sorry, Uncle Tian. I just thought of something and was a little absent-minded.
Thats good.
Imperial Doctor Tian nodded his head in relief.
Lady Qin
He had only said three more words when he was interrupted by Mo Ruyue. Uncle Tian, youve already asked me to change the way I address you. In the future, you and Aunt Tian can call me Ruyue. If you keep calling me Lady Qin, it seems to be estranged from our rtionship.
Alright, Ill call you Ruyue from now on.
After Imperial Doctor Tian heard this, he was stunned for a moment, but he quickly regained his senses and agreed with an excited expression.
The two of them continued to chat during the meal. It looked like they were just having a normal meal.
After he finished hisst mouthful of rice and put down his bowl and chopsticks, Imperial Doctor Tian said to Mo Ruyue, Ruyue, I actually called you here because I have something to discuss with you.
Mo Ruyue thought that the important matter was finally here, so she said to Imperial Doctor Tian, Uncle Tian, if theres anything you need, just say it. As long as its within my means, I wont refuse.
Now, the only people who could make Mo Ruyue say this, other than the Liu family next door, was Imperial Doctor Tian.
After this period of contact, she was really full of admiration for this old man. A doctors benevolent heart was a perfect example of a person like him.
Its like this, I want to invite you to run Huichun Hall with me. Every month, in addition to the original share-sharing method, there will be an additional 40% of the dividends.
Mo Ruyue didnt expect that Imperial Doctor Tian would actually want to tell her about this matter and was a little stunned for a moment.
Uncle Tian, why did you suddenly bring this up?
Its not sudden, but Ive been thinking about it for a long time.
Imperial Doctor Tian shook his head and sighed, Huichun Hall is my lifes work. Although its only in its embryonic form now, I really want to see Huichun Hall blossom everywhere.
At that time, there will be more poor families who will benefit from this. But I also know that once Huichun Hall has formed a certain scale, it is too difficult to not change your original intention.
I need a person with excellent medical skills to suppress the people who may be tempted. Over the years, I have wanted to train a few people, but the final results were not satisfactory. Just when I was about to give uppletely, I met you.
Mo Ruyue listened quietly. Only now did she understand what Imperial Doctor Tians final n was.
He had actually intended for her to inherit Huichun Hall and then develop it so that more poor people in the world could benefit from it.
This was originally the purpose of the establishment of Huichun Hall, and it had always been the principle that they pursued.
Uncle Tian, you know that Im afraid of trouble the most. When you asked me toe back to Huichun Hall to give medical services, I already said it. Now you want me to take over Huichun Hall.
Mo Ruyue subconsciously wanted to refuse.
Now, she felt that it was very troublesome for her toe to give medical services once every three days. If she took over Huichun Hall, she would be tied up.
Ruyue, I know youre a person whos afraid of trouble, but I also know that youre a person whos cold on the outside but warm on the inside. No matter what your original intention was when you first joined Huichun Hall, I believe that your thoughts must be somewhat different from before.
It had to be said that Imperial Doctor Tian still had a good eye for people. Mo Ruyue was indeed different from before. If it was only to make money, with her medical skills, she would only choose to treat the rich. Themission would be extremely high.
However, she would still treat the poor equally, even if it took two hours or more, but this order was free of both consultation and medical fees, and it did not affect her attitude.
Just from this point alone, Imperial physician Tian firmly believed that Mo Ruyue was the best candidate to take over Huichun Hall.
He saw that Mo Ruyue still seemed to have some resistance and knew that he couldnt be too hasty, so he said to her, How about this, Ruyue? You dont have to give me an answer immediately. You can take your time to think about it. Think about it carefully before you decide.
Mo Ruyue also nodded.
This matter was indeed not as simple as epting or rejecting. She really needed to consider it carefully.
Mo Ruyue had just returned from the Tian residence to the Huichun Hall when she saw another doctors assistant, Xin Yi, walking over and saying to her, Lady Qin, the young master of Guani building has arrived. He has been waiting for you in the backyard for a long time.
Waiting for me?
Mo Ruyue was very clear about Bai Shiyuans intentions, but he didnte if he should havee, and there was no need for him toe if he shouldnt have.
Therefore, she only said indifferently, If he wants to see me, let him line up at the back of the line. Everyone can line up in cold weather. How can he see me while sittingfortably in the backyard?
Originally, she had already made an exception for him once on ount of their previous friendship. Now, she would just follow the rules and not talk about friendship.
Seeing this, Xin Yi only bowed and went to the backyard to pass the message.
Not long after, Bai Shiyuan followed behind Xin Yi, but he did not dare toe to Mo Ruyues side. He only cupped his hands from a distance and went to the end of the line to queue.
Perhaps it was because it was cloudy and windy in the afternoon. The number of people in the queue had decreased a lot. In addition, Mo Ruyues diagnosis was fast and urate. In less than two hours, Bai Shiyuan was already standing in front of her table.
Please take a seat. Whats wrong?
Mo Ruyue asked in a business-like tone.
Lady Qin, Im here to apologize to you.
Bai Shiyuan had just opened his mouth when he was interrupted by Mo Ruyue.
...
Young Master, this is Huichun Hall. Im doing a consultation for a patient. If you dont feel sick, dont take other peoples ce. Next!
Mo Ruyue waved to the people behind him, obviously not intending to ept Bai Shiyuans apology.
Chapter 295 - 295 The Wicked Should Be Tortured By The Wicked
295 The Wicked Should Be Tortured By The Wicked
The person who told her to get lost was not Bai Shiyuan, so why should she ask him to apologize?
She didnt care how the Bai family pampered that brat, but she was dreaming if she thought that she could get someone toe and apologize and let the matter go after offending her.
Bai Shiyuan saw that Mo Ruyues attitude was firm and could only helplessly stand up first. It seemed that the person who tied the bell had to untie the bell. If he suffered on behalf of his younger sister again, he was afraid that Mo Ruyue would not even give him a chance to meet her again.
At least he still had some brains and guessed Mo Ruyues meaning. If he brought up Madam Bai next time, Mo Ruyue wouldnt care what kind of hidden background the Bai family had and would directly shut the door in their faces.
She was busy until sunset and it was time to go home. After Mo Ruyue finished seeing thest patient, she carried the medicine box and walked to the backyard.
Her big ck horse was tied to the backyard and taken care of by someone. When she was ready to leave, she just had to take the horse and leave from the back door.
Although the sky was getting dark and all the shops on the streets were busy closing their doors, there were very few pedestrians. Mo Ruyue still didnt ride a horse, but walked slowly on the street with the horse.
Nowadays, she would go home to buy something after every consultation, whether it was candy, paper, or pen. In short, she had to bring some gifts home. But it was a littlete today, and many shops were closed, so she couldnt think of what to buy.
The reason why she was walking slowly was that she was considering if there was anything that could be used as a substitute for her to bring back as a gift.
A carriage gradually followed behind her, but it only followed at a distance that was neither too far nor too close. It did note close to her.
It wasnt that Mo Ruyue didnt hear the sound of the wheels behind her, but she was deliberately ignoring it to see how long they could follow her.
Even when the city gate was right in front of her, Mo Ruyue still couldnt think of anything that could rece it. However, the people in the carriage behind her seemed to have lost their patience and started to catch up.
However, Mo Ruyue mounted her horse at this moment and sped out of the city.
Lady Qin, Lady Qin, please stop!
Bai Shiyuans voice came from behind. He was personally acting as the coachman, so he naturally saw Mo Ruyues every move clearly.
However, how could Mo Ruyue let him do as he wished? She shook the reins and prepared to speed up.
Qin Lady Qin, please wait.
Another slightly timid voice sounded. It was not as arrogant and domineering as it was in the morning, and it sounded like a normal little girl.
Although Mo Ruyue didnt stop, she didnt speed up to leave either. It was also at this time when the carriage caught up.
Lady Qin, please get in the car for a chat.
Bai Shiyuan looked at her and said earnestly.
The window of the carriage was slightly open, and a pair of eyes peeked at her from behind. As soon as their eyes met, they immediately dodged.
The city gates are about to close.
Mo Ruyue replied briefly, meaning that she didnt want to be stopped in the city and unable to go home because of this.
Dont worry, Lady Qin. It will only take a little bit of your time. It wont dy you from entering the city.
Bai Shiyuan immediately alighted from the carriage. It seemed like he was going to bribe the soldiers guarding the city.
Mo Ruyue got off the horse, but she didnt get on the carriage. Instead, she walked to the slightly opened window and said lightly, If you have something to say, just say it. You can close the window, I can hear you.
Lady Qin, Im sorry. It was my fault today. I shouldnt have spoken arrogantly and offended you. Please forgive me.
In the car, Bai Shijiao apologized honestly, like an obedient baby.
It was onlyter that she heard the whole story from her brother. The mother and daughter were set up by someone and fell ill. The target of the evil person was actually to kill her mother.
She also knew that this woman called Lady Qin was a divine doctor certified by the imperial court. She had cured countless difficult andplicated diseases and was also the hope of the mother and daughters rescue.
So, she listened to her brothers suggestion and got into the carriage to apologize.
If I wasnt the divine doctor, you wouldnt have apologized so quickly, would you?
Mo Ruyue said with a smile.
She was deliberately making things difficult for her. Who asked her to be a brat?
Evil people had to be dealt with by evil people, and she was already used to being an evil person, so it didnt matter if she did it again.
Yes, I wouldnt. I woouldnt havee either.
I want to be cured, Bai Shijiao said honestly. I also want my mother to continue living. Thats why Im here.
Youre honest.
Mo Ruyue nodded. It seemed that this devilish brat wasnt without merits.
Lady Qin, I sincerely ask for your forgiveness and also ask you to continue to treat me. If you really dont want to forgive me, Ill be satisfied if you can continue to diagnose my mother.
As Bai Shijiao spoke, she wanted to push the window open a little wider, but she did not expect Mo Ruyue to roll up the window from the outside instead.
You had acupuncture in the morning, so you cant get cold. Also, I never said I wouldnt treat your mother again. Youre thinking too much.
After she finished speaking, she got on her horse and left, ignoring Bai Shiyuans repeated calls.
The next morning, before the city gate opened, Mo Ruyue was already outside the city gate.
Soon, the city gate opened, and she led the horse into the city. She immediately saw a carriage with the word white written on it, and a coachman standing beside it.
Lady Qin, this little one was sent by the family head to pick you up. Please give me the ck horse and get on the carriage. That person immediately came up to Mo Ruyue and said solicitously when he saw her.
No need, just follow me. Its not far anyway.
Mo Ruyue knew that the Bai family felt guilty toward her, so they thought that it would be good if they could make up for it a little.
She did not care about these superficial things. Since Bai Shijiao had already shown her attitude yesterday, she should also show her attitude ordingly.
This You cant do it! Lady Qin, if you do this, this little one will be punished by the master.
The coachman said in fear, sweating in the winter.
Mo Ruyue didnt bother to say anything more. If the father and son of the Bai family made things difficult for a servant because of such a small matter, then she would be overestimating them.
Seeing that Mo Ruyue refused to get on the carriage, the coachman didnt dare to persuade her anymore and could only follow behind in fear.
...
When they arrived at the entrance of the Bai manor, the father and son of the Bai family were actually standing at the door, ready to wee them. When both sides saw each other, they were stunned for a moment.
Mo Ruyue didnt expect the father and son to wee her at the door, and the Bai familys father and son didnt expect that she really didnt take the carriage.
Theres no need to arrange a carriage tomorrow. Its so close. Theres no need.
She said casually, then handed the reins of the big ck horse to the coachman and said, It has a bad temper and is picky with its food. Dont get close to it except for feeding it water.
The coachman looked at the father and son of the Bai family in fear. When he saw Bai Shiyuan nod slightly, he finally felt relieved. He led the big ck horse and handed the carriage to another person before going around the back door.
Mo Ruyue still treated Madam Bai first.
Chapter 296 - 296 A Noble’s Token
296 A Nobles Token
She checked the previous days record book and didnt find anything wrong with the diet. Then she checked the food residue and dregs, but there were no traces of tampering.
It seemed that yesterdays beating the grass to alert the snake had achieved initial results. At least, the food and medicine had stopped for the time being. However, the strange fragrance in the house was still there, indicating that the mole in the house still had no intention of stopping.
During Mo Ruyues treatment, Madam Bai had wanted to say something countless times but stopped. She looked at Mo Ruyues face but didnt say anything in the end.
After the acupuncture, Madam Bai was covered in sweat. Although she had been lying down without moving, she felt as if she had been walking outside for a long time. Her whole body was sore and tired, and she did not even have the strength to move a finger.
Acupuncture can remove the damp and cold qi in your body. Its easy to get a headache, chest tightness, and weakness when youre wet. The sweat youre sweating now is a manifestation of the damp qi in your body, and its not even a drop in the bucket.
Remember, after every acupuncture session, you must not suffer from the cold. Otherwise, the moisture will flow backward and your condition will worsen. Then, my efforts will be in vain.
Mo Ruyue kept the medicine box as she warned.
Yes, Lady Qin is right. I was too impulsive yesterday.
Madam Bai knew that Mo Ruyue was using her words to provoke her. Yesterday, in order to plead for Bai Shijiao, she had personally gone out to look for her, which made Mo Ruyue very dissatisfied. This was also considered a kind of uncooperative action, and indeed, it was a taboo for Mo Ruyue.
Okay, then have a good rest. Ille back tomorrow to perform acupuncture on you.
As Mo Ruyue spoke, she carried her medicine box and prepared to leave.
Qin Lady Qin, are you going back now?
Madam Bai thought of an excuse and asked in a roundabout way.
Of course not. I still have patients to treat. How can I just leave?
Mo Ruyues words caused Madam Bais eyes to light up. She meant that
Bai Shijiaoy on the pillow and turned her head to look at the door from time to time. However, she was blocked by the screen and could not see anything.
Miss, Lady Qin is still performing acupuncture on Madam. Lady Qin is still treating Madam and it will take some time to end. Dont worry, Lady Qin will definitelye to treat you.
Qi Qiao tried to persuade her, but her heart was also beating like a drum.
It was said that Lady Qin was a person with a bad temper. Although miss had apologized to her personally yesterday, it was hard to say if she would be forgiven.
However, she could only persuade her with kind words now, for fear that her young miss mood would be depressed and affect her health.
No, youd better go over there and watch. If Lady Qines out and you didnt see her and missed her, it would seem that we dont know how to wee her and dont know etiquette.
Bai Shijiao was still worried and urged Qi Qiao to keep watch.
Yes, Miss. You can wait here with peace of mind. This servant will go and see if Lady Qin is done.
Qi Qiao obeyed her order and left. She opened the door and didnt go far before she immediately turned back and ran while shouting, Young Miss, Young Miss, Lady Qin is here!
What!
Bai Shijiao wanted to sit up immediately, but she was too fat, like a mountain of meat. Her limbs iled for a long time but she could not get up. In the end, she could only shout outside, What are you doing back here? Hurry up and go wee her!
Qi Qiao heard this and returned to her senses. She muttered two oh and turned to run out. In this time difference, Mo Ruyue had already reached Bai Shijiaos door.
Dont be so busy. Be more honest and obedient in the future. Thats better than anything else.
Her tone was still cold. If it was in the past, Bai Shijiao would have been hopping mad. However, she did not even dare to rebut now. She only replied softly, Lady Qin, I know Im wrong. Ill listen to you in the future.
Mo Ruyue did not reply and went straight into the house. She washed her hands, changed her clothes, and began to perform acupuncture on Bai Shijiao.
By the time Mo Ruyue finished all the treatment and was ready to leave the Bai manor, it was already past noon.
When the father and son of the Bai family heard that she was leaving, they rushed over to ask her to stay for dinner.
Lady Qin, if you dont stay for a meal before leaving, it would seem that my Bai family doesnt know the rules. No, no matter what, we have to have a meal!
Bai Jinshang, the head of the Bai family, insisted that Mo Ruyue stay for lunch before leaving. They did not expect that she would really continue to treat Bai Shijiao and had already given up hope.
Mister Bai, I wont beat around the bush with you. I just promised my family that Id be back for lunch, so I wont be staying here any longer.
This was the reason why Mo Ruyue insisted on riding back and forth. The most important thing now was to spend more time with the babies.
Alright then. Since thats the case, I wont insist. However, the Bai family will never forget Lady Qins great kindness to our Bai family. Please ept this.
Bai Jinshang handed over a piece of green belt buckle, which was of excellent color. Just by looking at it, one could tell that it was definitely expensive.
This is a token of my Bai familys noble. In the future, when Lady Qin is out, if you have any requests, just hang this on your waist and someone wille to find you.
Mo Ruyue didnt stand on ceremony. After epting it, he mounted his horse and left the Bai manor.
In the blink of an eye, more than a month had passed. It was almost the twelfth lunar month, and the new year would being soon.
The childrens results in the private schools year-end examination were extremely outstanding, firmly upying the first and second ce in their ss.
Even Qin Qingwan had taken the male sss test and scored first ce. Lin Zhiyuan was full of praise for her.
Seeing that the private school was about to be on holiday, and that the long holiday this time wouldst until the beginning of spring next year, Lin Zhiyuan asked the babies to pass a message to Mo Ruyue, saying that he had something to discuss with her.
So one day, after Mo Ruyue finished the treatment of the mother and daughter of the Bai family, on the way back from the county, she turned into another fork on the road and went to the private school in the neighboring vige.
She purposely skipped past lunchtime and arrived at the private school without disturbing Lin Zhiyuans rest as much as possible.
When he heard that Mo Ruyue hade, Lin Zhiyuan immediately came out to see her.
Mister Lin, may I know why youve called me here?
After Mo Ruyue gave a brief greeting, she went straight to the point.
Lady Qin, this matter is also rted to the future of the babies, so one or two words cant finish. Why dont youe in and have a chat in the lounge?
The lounge was where Lin Zhiyuan would meet with the parents of the students. It seemed like he was nning to have a long talk.
Mister Lin, dont you have to teach the students in the afternoon?
Although Mo Ruyue knew that the students had already finished their exams, his schedule was still quite full before the official holiday. He heard from the babies that he had to exin the exam questions and arrange the next years lesson content, etc., So his schedule was quite full.
The content of the ss is almost done. These days, I have been talking with the students parents. After all, in my private school, 11 or 12-year-old students will go to the citys academy to study. If they are unable to afford the book or school fees, Im afraid they will have to drop out of school.
...
Thats why I always call the parents of the students here to discuss the future of the children.
After Lin Zhiyuan said this, Mo Ruyue understood. This was the same as filling in the application form for junior high school and senior high school. It would determine the next turn of the childs fate, so it was indeed necessary to consider and discuss it carefully.
Alright, please go ahead, Mister Lin.
Chapter 297 - 297 The Children’s Admission Problem
297 The Childrens Admission Problem
Although Mo Ruyue felt that her babies life goal had already been set and there was nothing much to discuss, she still agreed to it out of courtesy and respect for Lin Zhiyuans serious and responsible attitude.
To be honest, although Lin Zhiyuan was not as dazzling a genius as Du Zhongheng, he could be said to be an all-rounder, but he was willing to live in this small mountain vige and set up a private school to open up a path for the children of moremon people to receive education. This in itself was a very respectable thing.
Mo Ruyue had just sat down in the lounge when Lin Zhiyuans wife brought her freshly brewed tea and freshly made desserts. They were yellow pea cakes and chestnut cakes that she had made by hand.
Lady Qin, I often hear Tang Tang say that your craftsmanship is excellent. I dont know if I have the opportunity to ask you for advice.
!!
Lin Zhiyuans wife was also an extremely gentle and beautiful woman. It was said that she came from a schrly family from Jiangnans waterside. Her soft and sweet voice was like a spring breeze, and one could not help but have a good impression of her.
Sure, when Tang Tanges tomorrow, Ill ask her to bring the recipe Ive written. As long as you dont mind.
Mo Ruyue also had a good impression of this couple.
Both of them were equally talented, gentle, and low-key. Both of them came from good backgrounds and could live a richer life in the city, but they were at ease in this small vige and lived in harmony with the vigers as equals.
Mo Ruyue had always felt that this kind of so-called good person was fake. Perhaps she had seen too many dark sides and had already developed an innate rejection of those warm and sunny things.
It was only after her rebirth that she had the opportunity toe into contact with the things that she had rejected before. After she realized that she was close to warmth, she really did not want to return to the cold darkness.
So now, when she saw those people who were radiating like the warm sun in spring, Mo Ruyue also learned to be kind and respectful.
The woman smiled and thanked him before leaving the lounge, leaving Lin Zhiyuan to talk to Mo Ruyue.
Lady Qin, I was actually very conflicted when I asked you toe. I was thinking if I should tell you these words or not. But as the teacher of your five babies, I still feel that its a pity that the babies cant walk the path of an official.
When Lin Zhiyuan said this, Mo Ruyue understood why he had asked her toe.
Although they had only been in school for a few months, everyone had a good foundation and their results in the ss were far better than others. Lin Zhiyuan had sighed like this countless times.
Mister Lin, I only feel that its a pity that the babies cant enter officialdom after seeing their grades. However, I think Ive already made this problem very clear when we first entered the school.
Although the babies are young, they all have their own opinions and know what kind of path they want to take in the future. They didnt make this decision jokingly. We sat together and thought about it before making this decision.
Mo Ruyue repeated what she had said before, but her attitude did not show any impatience.
Lin Zhiyuan felt sorry for the babies, which was why he had been saying this.
Then, does Lady Qin have any ns for Da Bao and Er Bao?
Lin Zhiyuan sighed. Seeing that Mo Ruyue seemed to be confused by his question, he exined in detail, What I mean is, in my private school, the children who have the ability to study until eleven or twelve years old will all choose to go to the citys college to continue their studies.
Er Bao and Da Bao are in the same ss now. Theyll have to decide whether to stay or leave at the end of summer next year.
Mo Ruyue nodded. This was a problem that they had discussed before entering the school. Now that he had said it, she really had to think about this problem carefully.
She couldnt possibly ask Lin Zhiyuan to make an exception and start a ss for the two babies.
It was impossible for her to make Er Bao and Da Bao drop out of school after only one year of education. It was not like she could not afford to support them.
Lin Zhiyuan saw that Mo Ruyue didnt respond for a long time and knew that she needed time to think about it. He didnt urge her and just waited quietly.
After a long while, Mo Ruyue finally opened his mouth and said, Mister Lin, since its about Da Bao and Er Bao, we should listen to their opinions first. My current n is to provide for them to continue studying as long as they want to.
Before that, Ill go and study the academies in the city first, and then Ille back to discuss this with you.
Lin Zhiyuan agreed with the idea and replied, Thats good. Lady Qin is so thoughtful. If the private school is on holiday, you cane directly. My wife and I will stay here.
Mo Ruyue had a swift and decisive personality. The next day, before she went to the Bai manor to treat the mother and daughter of the Bai family, she first looked for Bai Shiyuan.
You want to inquire about the situation of the misty pine academy?
He asked in surprise, Is it for your babies? remember that they should be at the one next to the Qin Vige Oh, its called Ling Yuan private school, right? Ive heard of that Lin Zhiyuan, but its said that all the children in the private school who have the ability to continue their studies after they turn eleven or twelve will go to the Sonn Academy to continue their studies.
Young Master, you know so much about this. It seems that Ive asked the right person.
Mo Ruyue knew that even though Bai Shiyuans family had to keep a low profile for some reason, the education of his descendants would definitely not be sloppy. Therefore, it was impossible for him to receive education in a ce like the Sonn Academy.
However, for his intelligencework, it was easy to know the situation of a small academy.
The academys reputation is not bad. The headmaster was also a schr and almost got the title of legendary schr. His strength is naturally not to be underestimated. Although he is not as dazzling as Du Zhongheng, he is definitely not bad.
But theres one thing. Lu Youxu is a stubborn conservative and disdains arrogant prodigies like Du Zhongheng the most. He must know that your five babies learned from Du Zhongheng and the rumors about you have been spreading like wildfire.
If your babies want to go to school, they will definitely be refused, so I advise Lady Qin to think about it carefully and find another ce.
Bai Shiyuan did know a lot of information, but this was also because Mo Ruyueswsuit had caused such a hugemotion that she had even sent her mother-inw to prison. That was why Bai Shiyuan had conveniently learned about this.
I see.
Mo Ruyue smiled faintly.
When she had chosen Du Zhongheng as the childrens teacher, she had already anticipated this scene, so she was not that surprised after hearing Bai Shiyuans words.
It seems that the choice of the Sonn Academy wont work.
Mo Ruyue didnt really mind. If it really didnt work, she could teach herself. She wouldnt neglect her babies studies. Besides, she had another choice, which was to hire Du Zhongheng all year round as the babies teacher.
Chapter 298 - 298 Recommendation
298 Rmendation
However, the Du Familys background was not small, and Du Zhongheng could totally not earn this sum of money from her, so this was only an alternative.
By the way, Lady Qin, I have a rmendation, but Im afraid you wont be willing to send the babies far away.
Bai Shiyuan seemed to have thought of something. After a slight hesitation, he said this to Mo Ruyue.
Young Master, please speak your mind.
!!
Mo Ruyue thought that there was no harm in listening and motioned for Bai Shiyuan to continue.
I know a good headmaster of the academy. He is a Jinshi who was born in the second ss. His character and temperament are good, and he especially loves talents. When Du Zhonghengs matter came to light, although he was despised and scolded by all the students in the world, only the headmaster stood on Du Zhonghengs side and spoke on his behalf.
So, I think that if your baby has any other choice, the headmasters academy can be considered.
When Mo Ruyue heard this, she immediately became interested.
Whats the name of the academy and where is it? Oh, perhaps I should ask the headmasters name first.
Hehe, I only knew that Lady Qin would definitely be interested.
Bai Shiyuan smiled and continued, That academy is called the Hanchen Academy. It is located in the suburbs outside Ping City. It upies a vast area and has a beautiful environment. It can be ranked among all the academies in the country.
The headmasters name is Ye Jingyu. Shes already forty-two years old this year. She has two sons and a daughter, and theyre all married.
He was very detailed, as if he was afraid that he would miss something. It was so detailed that it seemed like he was introducing a blind date.
The more Mo Ruyue listened, the more she didnt know whether tough or cry. In the end, she simply waved her hand and interrupted him.
Alright, Young Master. You mentioned that the academy is in Ping City, right? No wonder you said that I would miss them.
Ping City was more than one hundred and fifty miles away from the Qin Vige. Even in her previous life, when transportation was extremely developed, it would take a long time to travel by car, let alone in this era where most people had to walk and rely on mules and horses at most.
Mo Ruyue had a big ck horse, so it wouldnt take too much time toe and go. But for the babies, once they left, it wouldnt be easy toe back.
Moreover, Ping City was the territory of the prefect Duanmu Xize. Mo Ruyue knew that he was trying to get his hands on her. If she really let her babies study at the Hanchen Academy, it would be equivalent to sending her weakness right under his nose.
If that were to happen, she would have to follow them to Ping City. Only by being close could she prevent any idents from happening.
So, should I leave this ce?
For some reason, Mo Ruyue suddenly felt a trace of reluctance.
However, nothing had been decided yet. She would wait until the beginning of spring next year to slowly observe the academy. If it was really suitable for the babies, she would take them with him.
The babies would grow up eventually and would spread their wings to fly high. They wouldnt stay in the small vige of the Qin Vige forever.
Bai Shiyuan saw that Mo Ruyues expression had be more rxed, as if she had figured something out. He could not help but smile as well.
Alright, Young Master, thank you for your suggestion. Ill think about it.
Mo Ruyue nodded in thanks and went to continue her treatment with the first aid kit.
Bai Shiyuan looked at her back and thought of Mo Ruyues five babies. He could not help but sigh. Then, he called his personal attendant over.
You go to the Hanchen Academy and find out what Ye Jingyus attitude is towards the matter of Lady Qin and Du Zhongheng, as well as the twowsuits that arose because of it. After youve inquired clearly,e back and report.
Yes, this one will do it now.
The attendant immediately set off after receiving the task.
Very soon, Bai Jinshang found out about this matter and called Bai Shiyuan over for questioning. After listening to his sons exnation of the entire incident, he started to ponder.
Shiyuan, this matter has to be solved as a big deal. Besides the five babies, Lady Qin doesnt seem to have any desire for anything, and she doesnt care about anyone. So now that she has something to do, we have to do our best to help her.
Father, your son understands. She saved your life before, and now she has saved mother and sister. She is our familys benefactor. I will do my best to handle this matter.
Bai Shiyuan nodded his head solemnly. He had already started to think of various solutions in his mind.
Your body is recovering well now. Keep it up, but remember not to be greedy. If you really want to eat, tell me.
Mo Ruyue removed the silver needles from Bai Shijiaos body one by one and gave her routine instructions.
Madam Bai had already recovered under Mo Ruyues treatment. However, she still needed a period of time to recuperate because her vitality was damaged.
Bai Shijiao had lost a total of 40 pounds, and this was the result of Mo Ruyue deliberately slowing down her weight loss speed.
Lady Qin, Im really craving for it. I miss your cooking. Can you make me a few more nutritious meals?
When Bai Shijiao heard that, she immediately made a request.
After her treatment started, Mo Ruyue strictly controlled her diet. Even the recipes were set by her.
Bai Shijiao, who had long been used to heavy oil, high salt, and all kinds of heavy spices, suddenly ate those nd and tasteless things. She simply could not swallow them. However, she did not dare to throw a tantrum with Mo Ruyue, so she could only endure it in her heart.
She couldnt eat and was hungry. Even though she was slowly losing fat, this was not the way Mo Ruyue wanted her to lose weight. It was also the most harmful way to health.
Mo Ruyue also knew that it was a little too much to ask Bai Shijiao to change her diet structure and taste, so she personally made a nutritious meal for her, and a new world was opened to her.
How could the same ingredients be so delicious without any seasoning when they were in the hands of different people?
Bai Shijiao had finished the entire meal, and she even had the urge to finish the entire te.
However, Mo Ruyue was not a full-time chef hired by the Bai family. She had only given the recipe to the chef of the Bai family and taught him some tricks. However, with the same ingredients and steps, she still couldnt make Mo Ruyues taste.
Soter on, Mo Ruyue simply used this as a way to reward Bai Shijiao, and it also gave Bai Shijiao more motivation to continue losing weight.
When Mo Ruyue saw Bai Shijiaos pleading look, she smiled and said, Ill agree to your request on the ount of your recent good performance. However, theres a bottleneck perioding up. Can you hold on?
The so-called bottleneck period was when no matter if it was acupuncture, massage, medicine, or diet adjustment, there could be no effect at all. There might even be a rebound, which would bring anxiety and irritability to people. This was called the bottleneck period.
In the past month, Bai Shijiao had already experienced two bottlenecks. Every time she was at a bottleneck, Mo Ruyue would make her a nutritious meal as a reward based on her perseverance.
Chapter 299 - 299 Scamming
299 Scamming
Mm! Although I also hate this process, but Lady Qin, you once said that nothing can be easily obtained without going through some hardships, just like how Im sick and in pain, no matter how much money I have, I cant let others rece me.
I will persevere and cooperate with your treatment to find my own health and happiness.
Bai Shijiaos answer made Mo Ruyue very satisfied. It seemed that this devilish brat still had some redeeming qualities.
Ive just checked the condition of your skin. Theres no sign of rxation or saggy. Youre still in good condition. This is inseparable from your perseverance in exercising, so you must exercise more. You cant hide in the room and lie on the bed. Although it can consume fat, it will make your skin saggy. When the timees, theres no way to tighten it again.
!!
Mo Ruyue said again, and this sentence made Bai Shijiao even more proud.
Yes, I remember you said that if you lose weight too fast, your skin wont be able to keep up with the speed of fat consumption. It will be loose and saggy, and wrinkles will appear. Thats very difficult to recover.
Im only 13 years old this year. Only old women have wrinkles. How can a young girl like me have wrinkles? So, I trained my stretching skills and massaged them ording to your instructions. The results were really good!
As she spoke, she asked Qi Qiao to bring the mirror over. She looked at it carefully again and again, afraid that a wrinkle would appear if she missed one look.
Aalright, take your time. As long as you follow my method, youll be able to recoverpletely after a while.
As Mo Ruyue spoke, she had already packed up his medicine box and was ready to leave.
Lady Qin, may I ask, I offended you so much a month ago and even told you to get lost twice. Why are you still willing to treat me?
Bai Shijiao had been thinking about this question for a long time. She had kept this question in her heart for a long time, but she did not dare to ask it.
If she wasnt already getting to know Mo Ruyue better, she probably wouldnt have dared to ask this question.
Just treat it as me doing a good deed every day.
Of course, Mo Ruyue would not say that she had once given her a chance.
A person who was willing to lower his head and admit his mistakes in such a situation meant that he could still be saved. If she had not appeared in the carriage at that time and was instead Master Bai or Madam Bai, this opportunity would definitely not have existed.
Bai Shijiao only dared to say the words that she had been keeping in her heart after Mo Ruyue had walked far away.
Your mouth is still unforgiving, but now Im not so scared anymore.
Miss, Lady Qin has a sharp mouth but a soft heart. In the past, we only saw her cold side, and only after interacting with her for a long time did we know that shes really a good person.
Qi Qiao chuckled as she spoke while helping Bai Shijiao wipe her sweat and change her clothes to prevent her from catching a cold.
Mo Ruyue had already left the Bai manor and was walking on the street with her horse. Her mind was still thinking about the news she had heard from Bai Shiyuan today.
Hanchen Academy, ah. It seems that I should take some time to make a trip to Ping City.
Just as she was thinking about it, she suddenly caught a glimpse of someone from the corner of her eye who seemed to be deliberately charging at her. She was holding the horse in her hand, so no matter if she went left or right, it seemed that it was not suitable for her to dodge.
Mo Ruyues toes suddenly tapped lightly on the ground, and with the strength of her waist, she flipped onto Big cks back. She pulled the reins in her hand, causing Big ck to move two steps to the side.
This series of actions happened in an instant. The person who rushed over only felt a blur in front of his eyes, and the person who he had originally nned to pretend to be had disappeared in front of his eyes.
He had lost his center of gravity, but there was no resistance to stop the momentum. It was impossible to adjust his body again, so he threw himself forward and fell hard.
Mo Ruyue sat on the horse and looked down at him condescendingly, snorting coldly.
A small thief had actually stolen from her. It seemed that she was already exceptionally kind for not breaking his wrist on the spot.
Aiya, my waist is broken. Help, someones being killed!
Before Mo Ruyue could say anything, the person on the ground started to scream.
The man was wearing a coarse long shirt and had a mouse-like beard. His eyes were rolling around, and he had a treacherous look.
As he shouted, he tried to reach out to Mo Ruyues legs. However, she was sitting on the big ck horses back. Not to mention her legs, even if the person under her shoes stretched out his arms, he wouldnt be able to reach her.
Originally, there were passers-by who heard the noise and wanted toe over to see what was going on. In the end, when they saw that someone had a conflict with Lady Qin, although they didnt know the reason, they all cast a sympathetic look at the person lying on the ground.
Of all people, he had to bump into Lady Qin, and it seemed that he didnt know who he had offended.
Mo Ruyue didnt intend to pay attention to the scammer at all. She kicked the horses belly with both feet and the big ck horse began to move forward.
Hey, hey! Dont go! You want to run after injuring someone, wheres thew!
That person subconsciously wanted to reach out to grab the horses leg, but with a push from his waist, he had already sat up.
Mo Ruyue pulled the reins, and the big ck horses tail flicked, pping the mans face hard.
Aiyo!
The mans vision turned ck from the p, and his ears buzzed. He could not hear anything else.
It was already like this, but the man still stretched out his hand and said intermittently, Catch her, dont let her run!
When his blurry vision gradually became clear, Mo Ruyue and her horses shadow had long disappeared.
A passerby who was waiting to watch the show suddenly asked, Youre not a local, are you?
Its none of your business!
The man sitting on the ground had just lost a fat sheep, and now he had fallen for nothing and been pped in the mouth. He was feeling depressed, and now someone took the initiative to hit the muzzle of the gun, which just happened to be his punching bag.
Let me give you a warning. If you see that woman in the future, stay as far away from her as you can. Otherwise, youll definitely regret provoking her.
The man was not angry. He just looked at the man as if he was looking at a fool and continued to speak.
I didnt provoke her, she was the one who knocked me down first!
The man was still stubborn, but he suddenly realized that the people around him were looking at him with the same mocking and pitiful eyes as the man who had spoken. His heart couldnt help but beat faster.
Could it be that he had offended someone he should not have?
Forget it. Why are you wasting your breath on an idiot? Lets just take it as theres something interesting to watch. If theres no such person appearing every few days, how boring would these days be?
Someoneughed and said, which immediately attracted a wave of agreement.
Seeing that the crowd was gradually dispersing, the man with the mouse-like beard could no longer sit still. He got up from the ground and did not care to pretend to be injured anymore. He pulled a passerby who had just been watching the show and asked with a salivating face, Big Brother, who was that woman just now?
You want to know?
...
The passerby who was pulled back squinted at him and asked with a faint smile.
Ive only been in the county for a few days, and Im unfamiliar with the people and the ce. If I want to know something, I can only ask around. I saw that you looked kind and thought that you must be a warm-hearted person, so I asked you about it.
Chapter 300 - 300 Solved With A Bowl Of Honey Water?
300 Solved With A Bowl Of Honey Water?
That persons expression changed extremely quickly. Just now, he was still ring fiercely, but now, he was nodding and bowing to curry favor.
If you say so, your mouth will get dry easily.
The passerby was not ambiguous. After this conversation, the two of them had their arms around each others shoulders and ran to the pub like brothers.
When Mo Ruyue returned home, the babies had not yet returned from school. She closed the courtyard door and entered her interspace.
She first went to the library on the second floor to find a recipe book, opened it in the bookmarked section, and flipped through a few pages. She memorized the recipes at a speed of ten lines per nce, and then went to the vegetable garden outside the mushroom house.
She had opened up a vegetable field here and nted all the vegetables she could find.
There was an orchard behind the vegetable field, and the fruit trees nted there were already full of fruits.
Mo Ruyue was dragging a basket with wheels in her hand. She first picked some vegetables from the vegetable field and then some fruits from the orchard.
The ingredients that she used to make a nutritious meal for Bai Shijiao were all grown in the interspace. However, the freshness of the food was iparable to the other ingredients.
Today, she had picked a little more. She was going to prepare a portion for the five babies and the Liu couple next to her.
Usually, she would use the ingredients in her space to rece the ones outside, so the babies body was very healthy now, and they were even taller than their peers.
However, she would also pay attention to the problem of her intake. The principle of things will reverse when they reach an extreme was a truth no matter when.
After Mo Ruyue finished picking the ingredients, she directly made them into a nutritious meal and ced them in the kitchen of the mushroom house. She adjusted the time here to zero to achieve the effect of time stop, which was the safest effect.
When the babies came back, she took out the nutritious meals, but they were not enough for the babies to eat. They could only be used as snacks before the meal. She had to prepare some other dishes.
When the babies came home and heard that there was a nutritious meal to eat today, their eyes widened. They usually ate a lot of fish and meat, and now they were suddenly eating their mothers specially made nutritious meal. It was refreshing and delicious, and they could eat another bowl of rice.
Mo Ruyue looked at them eating happily with their heads together and felt very satisfied. For the time being, she threw the matters of Sonn Academy and Hanchen Academy to the back of her mind.
As expected, Bai Shijiaos third bottleneck had arrived.
Her anxiety made her appetite soar, and she always felt that her stomach was empty and she wanted to eat something.
Previously, Bai Shijiao had a hard time fighting against that anxiety. This time, the anxiety was even more intense. Bai Shijiao had just made a solemn promise to Mo Ruyue, but when the hunger came at night, she knew that she was finished.
By the time morning came, Bai Shijiao had already changed into two sets of clothes, both drenched in sweat from the hunger in her stomach.
Qi Qiao felt heartache and helplessness when she saw that her mistress had bitten her lips so hard that they were almost broken. She did not dare to persuade her, for fear that her mistress would give up on her determination.
Lady Qin had said that persistence was to do it in one go. If one cked a little, it would be like an ant hole copsing a dike of a thousand miles, and it would be impossible to fill the leak.
Seeing that the sky was gradually turning bright, Qi Qiao also went to the door from time to time to look around, hoping that Mo Ruyue would appear soon and save her youngdy from the fire and water.
Mo Ruyue wanted to perform acupuncture on Madam Bai as usual when she arrived at the Bai manor. She didnt expect that Qi Qiao would stop her as soon as she entered the gate.
Lady Qin, youre finally here. Please save Young Miss!
Qi Qiao didnt even need to say the reason. Mo Ruyue already knew what was going on. She said to Ling Qiao, who hade to wee her, Go back and tell Madam Bai that Ill go and see Miss first. Ill be there in a while.
After that, she brought Qi Qiao to Bai Shijiaos courtyard. On the way, she even instructed her to prepare a bowl of honey water in the small kitchen.
Before Mo Ruyue entered the house, she could hear Bai Shijiao shouting loudly in the house that she was looking for Qi Qiao. Judging from the irascible tone of her voice, she was not far from exploding.
You cant hold on anymore? It seems that I should go to your mothers ce first.
The moment Mo Ruyues words left her mouth, she heard Bai Shijiao scream in surprise, Lady Qin, please save me. I cant hold on any longer.
Hang in there, Ill see if you really cant hold on any longer.
Of course, Mo Ruyue wouldnt help her so easily. She would have to rely on herself to ovee this obstacle bit by bit. Otherwise, she wouldnt be able to hold on for even a second when the next bottleneck came.
Although Bai Shijiao could throw a tantrum at others, she was as obedient as a littlemb in front of Mo Ruyue.
She knew very well that Mo Ruyue never spoke nonsense. As long as she did what she said, she would definitely be right.
The effects of the treatment during this period of time had made her trust in Mo Ruyue to the point of blind obedience.
Lady Qin, the honey water is here.
Qi Qiao quickly brought over a bowl of honey water. At the same time, she also put a few roses in it ording to Mo Ruyues request.
Jiaojiao,e here and drink this bowl of honey water.
Mo Ruyue called out, and Bai Shijiao walked out from behind the screen with a coat draped over her.
She drank the bowl of honey water as she was told, and then she felt that her trembling hands and feet were immediately relieved.
Just as Bai Shijiao was waiting for Mo Ruyue to bring something out for her, she saw that Mo Ruyue had already turned around and walked out.
Lady Qin, this, this is it? Bai Shijiao said in surprise.
Yeah, arent you much better? Mo Ruyue asked in return.
Yes Im better. Bai Shijiao said hesitantly. She did not quite understand what Mo Ruyue was up to.
The time for your mothers acupuncture is already over. Its fine if its a littleter, but if its dragged on for too long, itll easily affect the treatment.
Mo Ruyue had given her an answer, but it was not the one she wanted.
Then the torture I suffered fromst night until now was resolved with a bowl of honey water?
Bai Shijiao asked directly. If she had known this would happen, she would not have waited the entire night until now.
Its normal for you to stay upst night, but if you continue to stay up, something bad will happen. As for why, well talk about it when I get back.
As Mo Ruyue spoke, she took off a bag from her back and took out the nutritious meal boxes inside.
She saw Bai Shijiaos eyes emit a gaze like that of a hungry wolf. The corners of her lips curled up slightly, and the smile in her eyes disappeared in a sh.
Looks like youve recognized it. But not for you to eat now. It was for you to see. If you want to eat it, it will depend on how much you persevere.
This time, she didnt stop after she finished speaking. She put the lunchbox on the table and carried the medicine box to perform acupuncture on Madam Bai.
Bai Shijiao looked at the lunchbox on the table and felt the drool in her mouth suddenly increase. She swallowed with all her might, but she still felt that it was about to overflow from her mouth.
...
She didnt dare to say anything, but just stared at the lunchboxes with her hands on the edge of the table.
She could clearly reach out and grab it, but why did it feel so far away?
When Qi Qiao saw this, she didnt know whether tough or cry.
She had a feeling that Lady Qin must had done it on purpose!
However, her young miss really looked like she could be bullied easily. Her hands seemed to be a little itchy.
Chapter 301 - 301 Losing Weight
301 Losing Weight
After realizing this dangerous thought, Qi Qiao could only hide outside the house. Although it was a little cold, it could still keep her mind clear.
About two hourster, Mo Ruyue returned to Bai Shijiaos courtyard. But this time, before she reached the door, she heard a burst of sweetughter from inside.
Jiaojiao, this is the first time Ive seen you so obedient. Mm, what did I say? You need someone who can control you to take care of you.
Zhu Zhu, dontugh at me like that. I didnt believe my brother when he said that I would be punished sooner orter, but now its like this. I think youre in the same situation as me, so dont justugh at me. Youre too happy that I am sad.
!!
Even though Bai Shijiaos voice was dejected, there was still a hint of anticipation. It seemed that she was in desperate need of someone who could cure her little sister so that she could feel better.
Miss, Lady Qin has returned.
Qi Qiao came to report in time.
Bai Shijiao was initially lying limply on the table, but when she heard this, she immediately straightened her body.
Really? Thats great, I was still wondering why we had such a long day. Hurry, hurry and invite her in.
Originally, Mo Ruyue would directly enter Bai Shijiaos boudoir, but because there were guests today, she had to wait outside for a while.
After hearing Bai Shijiaos invitation, she entered the room and met a pair of bright eyes.
It was a little girl with a round figure. The impression she gave Mo Ruyue could be described with one word: round!
Her eyes were round, her nose was round, her mouth was round, her face was round, and even her ten fingers were round like carrots. On the back of her hand, there were ten small meat pits, which made people have the urge to poke at it.
No wonder Bai Shijiao called her Zhu Zhu just now. She was indeed round and smooth.
Lady Qin, let me introduce you to my good sister, Zhu Zhu. Zhu Zhu, this is the Lady Qin that I told you about. Didnt you always want to see her? This time, you finally got your wish.
Bai Shijiao immediately introduced the two of them.
Good name.
Mo Ruyue nodded at the little girl called ZhuZhu. Her eyes didnt stay on her for long, and she didnt even have the intention to further investigate her background.
Zhu Zhu looked at Mo Ruyue curiously.
She was indeed as bright and cold as Bai Shijiao had said. Although she was only wearing simple mens clothes, it could not hide her outstanding and proud temperament.
Even in the circle she was in, it was rare to see such a person stand out. Could it be that she was from a noble family?
Mo Ruyue allowed those curious eyes to linger on her and continued to do what she had to do every day.
After this months treatment, Bai Shijiao already knew what the daily procedure was, so the two of them cooperated with each other very well.
Zhu Zhu followed behind and watched for a while. Suddenly, she said to Mo Ruyue, Lady Qin, I also want to lose weight, can you help me?
Zhu Zhu, you want to lose weight too?
Before Mo Ruyue could say anything, Bai Shijiao spoke first.
Your parents would even feel heartache for you to eat less meat, so how could they ask you to lose weight? Besides, can you even control your mouth?
Her series ofints made Zhu Zhu pout, and she said unhappily, My parents listen to me. Besides, my mouth is also on my body. What cant I control?
You make it sound nice, but when youre really hungry, you wont be like this.
Bai Shijiao pursed her lips, obviously already knowing Zhu Zhus temperament all too well. However, she did not dare to offend this little devil, so she only mumbled softly.
Jiaojiao, what did you say? I heard it!
Zhu Zhus eyebrows were raised, and her small hands were ced on her waist, making a teapot-like posture. It was obviously a shrew-like posture to others, but it was especially cute to her.
Just by looking at her, Mo Ruyue could easily imagine why Zhu Zhus parents loved her so much.
She was like a pink ball of meat carved out of jade. Although she was chubby, she was not bloated at all. Moreover, her words and actions carried a kind of coquettishness that was well-pampered, so she was particrly lovable.
If you want to lose weight, you have to get your parents permission. And Ill be blunt. If you cant hold on and start to be greedy for your first time, all your previous efforts will be in vain. By then, I wont waste my energy to perform acupuncture on you a second time.
Although Mo Ruyue had an inexplicable good impression of Zhu Zhu, she had her own principles and would not be particrly lenient and indulgent to her because of this.
Lady Qin, dont listen to Jiaojiao talk about me like that. Ive always been more patient than her. If she can do it, I can do the same!
Zhu Zhus little face was flushed red, but she was not to be outdone. She had to convince Mo Ruyue to help her lose weight.
Give me your hand.
Mo Ruyue reached out to her. When she obediently reached out her left hand, she pulled her to her side and groped up her wrist and arm.
Aiya, hehe, its so itchy! Zhu Zhu couldnt help but wriggle a few times, trying to avoid Mo Ruyues hand.
She had been most afraid of tickles since she was a child. Even if someone were to speak in her ear, the hot air that was blown out would make her itch for a long time.
You have a small frame, so its harder for you to look fat than most people. But if you really make people feel fat, then youre really fat.
After Mo Ruyue examined her, she said some very heartless words.
Zhu Zhus face fell. Mo Ruyues words were like a critical blow to her.
Bai Shijiao was having a hard time trying to hold in herughter. She even turned around on purpose to cover up herughter by coughing.
So, Lady Qin, you said that Im fat. Then shouldnt I lose weight even more? So, please help me!
After Zhu Zhus annoyance, she continued to plead with Mo Ruyue.
Bai Shijiaos previous and current appearance was the best evidence. As long as Lady Qin agreed to help, she would definitely be able to slim down!
Even though she was born as a pink ball and had never slimmed down for a day, which was why her parents had named her Zhu Zhu, she still felt bad when she saw that she was the only one who was round and smooth while everyone else was graceful and elegant.
Mo Ruyue looked at Zhu Zhus earnest expression and could understand her desire to lose weight.
Now that she was at the age where she was about to bloom, the young girl did not want to be like a blooming flower in spring. No matter how precious the pearl was, who would want to be round?
I can help you. Just do as I said. If I can do it, Ill help you.
It was rare for Mo Ruyue to repeat her condition again, and it immediately attracted Bai Shijiaos surprised gaze.
...
After this period of time, she had a considerable understanding of Mo Ruyues temperament. This Lady Qin was a person of her word, especially the words that she had said before. She didnt like to repeat them.
Now, she could actually repeat the same words to Zhu Zhu in such a short period of time, which was simply unbelievable!
Chapter 302 - 302 The Natural Body Constitution Of Getting Fat Easily
302 The Natural Body Constitution Of Getting Fat Easily
Mo Ruyue ignored Bai Shijiaos gaze and carefully twisted the silver needles on her body again. Looking at the time, this round of acupuncture was ready.
Three dayster, a celestial couple came to the Bai manor.
Although the two of them were already middle-aged, time did not seem to have left any traces on their bodies. The man was handsome and the woman was beautiful. Their outstanding appearance made them the absolute focus of attention no matter where they went.
Brother Bai, my willful girl has caused you trouble again.
!!
A handsome man walked over. He looked like he was only in his thirties, but he was calling Bai Jinshang, who had already turned white, his brother.
Brother Ouyang, what are you saying? If not for Zhu Zhu, Im afraid we wouldnt have the chance to meet again.
Bai Jinshang shook his head. He had been in hiding for so many years and had stopped contacting these people on the surface. However, he would asionally write to this couple in private.
However, the couples daughter, Ouyang Yizhu, had stayed in Bai Manor for a period of time when she was very young. Hence, she had formed a deep sisterly bond with Bai Shijiao.
Although the Ouyang couple hadnte to the Bai Manor for a long time, Ouyang Yizhu came almost two or three times a year. She came to visit their old friend on behalf of her parents.
This time, if it wasnt for Zhu Zhu saying that she had met a miracle doctor and that she had to lose weight, and that the miracle doctor had said that she needed her parents approval before she would help her lose weight, they probably wouldnt have had the chance toe to the Bai manor.
Brother Bai, Im afraid that Wen Yin and I have brought you some trouble this time?
The man surnamed Ouyang had a worried look on his face. They had doted on their daughter too much. In order to fulfill her wish, they might cause trouble for their sworn brother. He was really uneasy.
Yan, dont think about these things. Weve been in seclusion for many years. No one will think about us anymore. You guys can rx.
Bai Jinshang shook his head. In order to make the Ouyang couple feel at ease, he said something that went against his heart.
He knew very well why the Ouyang couple would dote on Ouyang Yizhu so much, so he did not care about what kind of hidden danger their arrival would bring to the Bai n. Furthermore, the Bai n was still indebted to the Ouyang n, so even if the Bai n were to suffer, they would have no regrets.
Alright, lets not talk about this first. Since youre here, please wait for a while. That Lady Qin is currently treating your sister-inw. It wont be toote to see you again after shes done.
Bai Jinshang changed the topic at the right time and ordered the servants to serve the prepared refreshments. The three of them drank tea and reminisced about the past while waiting for Mo Ruyues arrival.
After waiting for about two hours, someone from Madam Bais room came to report that Madams treatment had ended, and Lady Qin wasing to the study.
In just a short while, there was the sound of footsteps, and then there was a knock on the study door.
Master Bai, Im here.
When Mo Ruyue had just arrived at the Bai manor today, she had been informed that Zhu Zhus parents had arrived.
Although she had heard from Bai Shijiao that Zhu Zhus parents doted on her a lot, she could not help but feel a little emotional when she heard that they had spent three days to get here from a thousand miles away.
This wasnt the era in her previous life where transportation was extremely developed, where a thousand miles was only a few hours flight.
Even if she rode on Big ck, she would have to travel a thousand miles without rest or sleep. It could be said that in addition to a precious horse that could travel a thousand miles a day, she would have to spend three days on the horses back. Even her rest had to bepleted on the horses back.
That Zhu Zhus parents were definitely people of noble status. To be able to put in such hard work for their daughter, it was really not easy.
Lady Qin is here? Pleasee in! Bai Jinshang immediately replied. Then, he saw Mo Ruyue walk in from the door.
As soon as she entered the room, her eyes were involuntarily attracted to a couple sitting on the eastern armchairs in the study.
The couple was extremely good-looking. Although they were dressed in riding clothes for the journey, their luxurious and respectful style could not be hidden in any way.
However, what attracted Mo Ruyue wasnt their good looks, but the moment she saw them, a few images suddenly shed in her mind.
She staggered for a moment, but she quickly stabilized herself. This small change did not attract Bai Jinshangs attention, but it was noticed by the Ouyang couple.
When they saw Mo Ruyue, they subconsciously stood up. They didnt know why they suddenly felt a sense of familiarity, so at that time, their attention was highly focused on Mo Ruyue. Naturally, they could notice that something was wrong with her.
Was Lady Qin tired just now?
Madam Ouyang couldnt help but take a step forward and ask with concern. She even made a gesture of reaching out to support her.
Its fine, Im not tired.
Mo Ruyue was also very surprised by the womans concern for her. Even if she could help their daughter lose weight, with their status, they shouldnt have acted like this when they first met.
Bai Jinshang was also surprised.
The Ouyang couple were known for their cold and distant personalities, and they would only be close to the Bai family, their daughter Zhu Zhu, and a few of their loyal subordinates. But to be so concerned about someone they had just met for the first time, it was really a little unbelievable.
Mo Ruyue focused her mind. Although she didnt know what the scene was, it was obviously not a good time to find out the answer.
Lady Qin, I heard from my Zhu Zhu that she saw the effect of you helping Jiaojiao lose weight and also had some thoughts. But you said that you needed her mothers and my consent, so we came.
The man with the surname Ouyang smiled and added.
By the way, my surname is Ouyang, and my first name is Rui. Zhu Zhus mothers surname is Yue, and her maiden name is Wen Yin.
Mr. And Mrs. Ouyang.
Mo Ruyue nodded slightly to the two of them and then said, Im going to perform acupuncture on Jiaojiaoter, so lets cut to the chase.
Ive examined Jiaojiao before. Shes born with a body that puts on weight easily. Shes the kind that will put on weight even if she drinks water. So, shes probably been chubby since she was young and has never tried to lose weight, right?
Yes, Lady Qin is right. She has always been chubby since she was born and has never slimmed down.
Madam Ouyang nodded.
Her weight gain is not caused by overeating. Even if you spoil her and never restrict her from eating, you should have tried many medicinal foods to regte her stomach so that she can eat without dy and slim down at the same time, right? Mo Ruyue asked again.
Lady Qin really has divine foresight, you can also check these things? Madam Ouyang asked in surprise.
They didnt trust the imperial physicians in the pce, so they only used folk divine physicians that they had found. The medicinal recipes they used were also based on food and excess medicine. By right, there shouldnt be any obvious marks left behind, but Mo Ruyue was right about all these. It seemed that she really had some real skills.
Chapter 303 - 303 Recipe
303 Recipe
Thats not difficult. Zhu Zhu probably ate more than medicine at that time, so the medicine didnt have much effect on her body. If she wants to lose weight now, I wont give her any medicine. Ill adjust her diet, acupuncture, massage, and appropriate exercise.
But theres one thing. She cant open her mouth. Otherwise, its very easy to cause a bacsh. Ive already spoken to her about this. If she cant hold on and breaks the rules, I wont give her a second chance.
Mo Ruyue also said the ugly words to the Ouyang couple in advance.
Weve heard about this from Zhu Zhu, and wepletely agree with Lady Qins rules. Nothing can be aplished without rules. No matter how much we dote on her, she should be responsible for her own choices.
!!
This time, it was Mr. Ouyang who spoke. Other than listening to his wifes conversation with Mo Ruyue, he had also been quietly sizing up this Lady Qin.
He always felt that the sense of familiarity he had for this Lady Qin was getting stronger and stronger, but he was sure that he had never seen her before. So where did this sense of familiaritye from?
Therefore, he couldnt help but interject just now.
Although Zhu Zhu is a little fat, she doesnt need to lose too much weight in one go. Her body is the healthiest right now. If she loses too much weight rashly, it will cause her bodys functions to be imbnced, leading to aversion to food or overeating, which will eventually affect her health.
My suggestion is to divide it into three stages. One course of treatment willst for half a month, and the body will be stabilized for half a month before the next course of treatment. However, I have onest condition, and that is that I will only treat her in the county. Because I have five babies at home and Im on duty now, I wont be going far. Please consider it carefully.
Mo Ruyue stated herst condition.
After the Ouyang couple looked at each other, they looked at Bai Jinshang and said, Brother Bai, Im afraid well have to stay here for a while.
Bai Jinshang smiled. Its rare that we have such fate. I cant ask for more. Even if you dont stay, I have to try to force you to stay.
This conversation was equivalent to giving Mo Ruyue an answer. She had one more patient.
After learning that Mo Ruyue had agreed to help her lose weight, Zhu Zhu immediately cheered. She even wanted to drag Bai Shijiao to dance in circles with her, but was stopped by Mo Ruyue.
You can dance if you want to. After Im done with the acupuncture, shell take a bath and rest for an hour. Then, you can dance however you want.
After Mo Ruyue said this, the two of them became obedient because they knew that Mo Ruyue had to go home early to apany the five babies. They definitely couldnt dy her return.
This is the recipe Ive prepared for you. Its adjusted ording to your physical condition. Take a look first.
She took out a thick stack of paper from the medicine box. It had already been bound, and inside it was a recipe transcribed in beautiful hairpin-style regr script. It was written ording to the amount of food for three meals a day, different every day.
Lady Qin, you havent agreed to help me yesterday, but youve already started to organize the recipes?
Zhu Zhu flipped through the pile of recipes, her eyes filled with obvious surprise. She didnt think that Mo Ruyue would have already nned out the recipes in advance. Didnt this mean that she had already epted her request in advance?
Eh? Theres meat in my recipe? But isnt it better not to eat meat if you want to lose weight?
She quickly discovered a new problem and immediately asked Mo Ruyue for confirmation.
Losing weight isnt just about limiting you from eating meat. You still have to ensure that you have the necessary nutrients. Whats limiting is to eat meat without restraint. High oil, high salt, and high sugar. These heavy vors will cause you to fail in losing weight. Mo Ruyue patiently exined.
It was impossible for her to be by Zhu Zhus side in the future, so she had to teach these things to her personal maidservant, and she also had to remember them.
For people who gained weight easily, they also needed to adjust the digestive function of her spleen and stomach. So, in order to really not have a rebound in the future, they must also make adjustments to their diet.
Its good to be able to eat meat but I dont like meat.
Zhu Zhu held the pile of recipes as if she was holding a treasure. Her pair of smiling eyes curved as she looked at mo Rufei, particrly cute and likable.
Lady Qin, why do I almost not see meat in my recipe?
When Bai Shijiao heard this, she immediately shouted in protest.
Now, she gradually dared to act coquettishly with Mo Ruyue. Although she still had a cold face often, she was actually a soft-hearted person with a sharp mouth. However, this could only be slowly discovered after she obediently cooperated with her treatment.
Youre fat because youre under too much pressure, which is different from Zhu Zhu, so you have to strictly control your meat intake. The asional meat dish is also to ensure that you dont lose your nutrition bnce.
Mo Ruyue also exined to Bai Shijiao. After she heard it, she could not help but sigh. If only I was in the same situation as Zhu Zhu. Im also a meat lover, not being able to eat meat makes me feel really bad.
Only now did she understand why only the rewarded nutritious meal would have meat dishes. It was to give her nutrition.
No wonder she would give her some mission target from time to time, and then give her a reward. Now that she thought about it, it was all full of tricks.
However, now that she saw that her bloated figure was getting slimmer and slimmer day by day, and her skin was still smooth and firm, without bing loose and stic because she had lost a lot of meat, she still sincerely thanked and rejoiced to have met a divine doctor like Lady Qin.
Therefore, even if she could only eat meat asionally to satisfy her craving because of her illness, she was still satisfied. After all, she could only continue to eat delicious food after she became beautiful again.
Because now there was one more patient who needed acupuncture, Mo Ruyue could only adjust the time to the afternoon.
Fortunately, Zhu Zhus condition was much simpler than Bai Shijiaos and acupuncture did not take that long. Although she would return hometer than usual, she would not return home only after dark.
After nearly a week of treatment, Zhu Zhus round little face had started to show some lines.
What she liked to do most now was to look at herself in the mirror every day, not wanting to miss any small changes in herself.
Afterparing with her, Bai Shijiao seemed to have a new motivation. Now, other than Mo Ruyues nutritious meal, which she still looked forward to, she also monitored andpared with Zhu Zhu every day. This allowed her to pass the seemingly insurmountable bottleneck period very quickly.
The Ouyang couple, who had originally stayed in the Bai manor for their daughter, only stayed for four days before leaving. Before they left, Madam Ouyang held Zhu Zhu in her arms, unwilling to let go. In the end, it was Mr. Ouyang who persuaded her again and again before she got into the carriage.
Chapter 304 - 304 The New Year
304 The New Year
Zhu Zhu seemed to be used to this kind of separation and did not show any signs of reluctance. Instead, she waved her hands happily, as if she was free.
Mo Ruyue did not have much interaction with the Ouyang couple. Since the first day of their conversation, they had only met briefly today before they parted.
As the carriage went further and further away, Mo Ruyue felt as if something was leaving with it. This feeling was familiar yet strange. It was the kind of reluctance that would only arise when someone important left. But why would she have such feelings for two people she had just met?
She frowned slightly. This feeling was not hers, but the memory of the original owner that remained in her body.
The remnants of that memory had been sealed away for too long, so much so that she thought it had disappeared. She did not expect it to surge up again in such a situation.
Mo Ruyue had no intention of exploring other peoples past. Since she was the one upying this body now, then she would let her live on with her memories and way of life.
Lady Qin, what are you thinking about? Its rare to see you in a daze.
Zhu Zhu poked her head out from the side and looked at Mo Ruyue with a smile.
Im fine. I just thought of something.
Mo Ruyue came back to her senses and put away the memories of that day.
Looking at the time, there are only a few days left until the new year. It looks like Ill have to spend the new year at the Bai family this year.
Zhu Zhu sat down beside her, the excitement on her face seemed to be a little overdone, as if she was trying to hide something.
Lady Qin, why dont you also bring the babies into the city for the new year? Theres nothing good to eat or y in the mountains. You bring them here, and Ill take care of them. I guarantee that theyll have a good andfortable new year!
Mo Ruyue shook her head. I already have a n. But I still have to thank you for your kind intentions.
Oh, thats fine. I still have Jiaojiao to apany me.
Although Zhu Zhu also agreed happily, a faintyer of gloominess surfaced in her eyes.
After entering the twelfth lunar month, there was a new year custom almost every few days. All kinds of preparations needed to be made before the festival in order to get a good luck.
Mo Ruyue had never celebrated any new years festival in her previous life, so she was not sensitive to these days.
However, after her rebirth, she had a few more little radishes by her side. They were all full of anticipation for the new year, the biggest festival of the year. So after the twelfth lunar month, they were extremely excited on every new years Day. Even Mo Ruyue was busy with it, and slowly began to take the initiative to participate in it.
The closer it was to the new year, the more such New Year days there were.
It was the 23rd day of the 12th lunar month, the new year.
The babies private school had long been on holiday. Early in the morning, before Mo Ruyue had entered the city, the babies had already run to the kitchen and started to busy themselves.
Mother, Im going to send the Kitchen Lord to heaven today. Grandmother Liu said that the stove must be clean and must be served with candied melons, sugar sticks, and all kinds of pastries. Once the Kitchen Lord is satisfied, he wont report the bad things in our family to the Jade Emperor Grandpa.
While Si Bao was busy, he didnt forget to tell Mo Ruyue about the customs he had heard from the Liu family.
Theres nothing bad in our family. Its nonsense. Even if there was, its old news. Weve turned over a new leaf.
Er Bao couldnt bear to hear the word bad. Now, his family was living a happy life, which was the happiness he had never had since his father left. Today was a good day, so he didnt want to be stained with the word bad.
Second Brother is right. If Kitchen Lord wants to talk, he should talk about how Mother is good to us and how our family can live better.
Tang Tang rearranged the te with the candied melons and handed the incense that she had just taken out of the room to Mo Ruyue.
Mother, you should burn some incense for Kitchen Lord. This is something that should be done by the elders.
Mo Ruyue held the incense and didnt know what to say for a moment.
She was originally a firm atheist, but she had already experienced rebirth, transmigration, and the evolution space. What was impossible?
Mother, just say a few words of prayer and tell me your new years wish.
Da Bao looked at his mothers dazed expression and thought to himself, My mother used to be very eloquent, but why doesnt she know how to say anything now? She just gave me a few words of advice.
Then I hope that the Kitchen Lord will say more good things to us when he goes to heaven. Ill be happy and happy as a family in the future. Ill be happy as long as all of you can grow up healthy and well.
Mo Ruyue mumbled as she lit the incense in her hand. After she bowed three times and inserted the incense into the incense burner, she turned around and found that the five babies were all standing behind her, staring at her in a daze.
Whats wrong? Did I say something wrong?
Mo Ruyue was also stunned for a moment. She carefully recalled what she had just said. This was the first time she had said something like a wish. She hoped that she would not say something that she should not have and end up overreaching herself.
Mother, why dont you say a few words about yourself? Youre talking about us? Er Bao asked, and the other babies looked at her and nodded.
I dont have anything to say.
Mo Ruyue smiled. My greatest wish is for you guys to live well. Speaking of which, I feel that Ive really raised you guys well.
The more she spoke, the more she felt a sense of aplishment. She wondered if she could add on a sentence to the Kitchen Lord, asking him to praise her for being a good mother. That was enough.
Mother, I just told Kitchen Lord to praise you when he reports to Grandpa Jade Emperor. You are the best mother in the world!
Tang Tang held Mo Ruyues hand and looked up at her seriously.
She did not act coquettishly, and every word she said came from the bottom of her heart. This was clearly written in her eyes.
Mother will be satisfied with your praise.
Mo Ruyue touched the top of Tang Tangs head, and her heart suddenly softened.
She now seemed to understand why some people, even if their hearts were once as hard as iron, could eventually be soft around the fingers. Sincere feelings could indeed move peoples hearts.
Of course, not all sincerity could be exchanged for sincerity.
From the 23rd day of the twelfth lunar month to the day of the new year, every day was a good day. The next day was the 24th day of sweeping dust, the 25th day of hanging couplets, the 26th day of cutting new year meat, the 27th day of washing blessings, the 28th day of fried noodles, and the 29th day of visiting the grave to invite ancestors. The 30th day of the new year was new years eve.
It was a pity that Mo Ruyue still had to go to the Bai manor to treat the three patients these few days. So even if she wanted to participate in the daily activities as much as possible, she could only make it in time for the afternoon.
Fortunately, Madam Bais treatment time had been greatly reduced. She mainly relied on medicine to recuperate. Bai Shijiaos condition was getting better and better, and the original two hours had also been reduced. In this way, Mo Ruyue could still return home just after noon.
The Bai family was grateful and guilty that Mo Ruyue could still survive such a day, so they prepared arge number of all kinds of new years goods, filling three carriages, and sent them to Mo Ruyues house on the 26th of the twelfth month.
Chapter 305 - 305 New Year Gift
305 New Year Gift
Today was the day to reap the harvest of the new year. They filled the jars or cupboards in the kitchen with all kinds of meat, then bought some sweets, dried fruits, and other new years goods to prepare for the New Years Eve dinner.
Mo Ruyue was still at the Bai familys house at that time. It was Da Bao, along with his younger siblings, who had picked up the three big carts of new years goods.
Fortunately, there were servants in each carriage. They followed Er Bao and Si Baos instructions and unloaded all the new years goods, sending them to the kitchen, warehouse, and cer separately.
The kitchen was, of course, managed by Si Bao. The food alone filled up an entire carriage. If it was not properly nned, it would just be piled up messily.
As for the rest of the things, Er Bao was in charge of overall nning, sorting them out, and cing them. He had almostpleted everything by himself.
It wasnt that the other babies didnt want to help, but that everyone had their own duties and tried to train and disy their own specialties.
These three carriages of new year goods once again caused a sensation in the entire Qin Vige. No one could surpass the glory of the Qin familys first household. For a moment, the vige was filled with envious gazes and discussions. It was unknown how many people regretted not being able to establish a good rtionship with the Qin familys first household.
After Mo Ruyue returned home, she was pulled by Er Bao from the warehouse to the kitchen and cer to take a good look at the results of his and Si Baos hard work for half a day.
Hmm, not bad. Ill give you a shop now. You should be able to open it.
Mo Ruyue was just joking, but Er Bao took it to heart.
Just past noon on the 27th of the twelfth month, Mo Ruyue couldnt wait to go home.
She rushed to the back door, ready to leave with big ck. She had only taken a few steps when she saw the Bai familys father and son, Bai Shijiao, and Zhu Zhu waiting for her at the only way to the back door.
Lady Qin, the new year ising and these two days are the busiest time. Since my wife and daughters illness is not a big problem, then you should rest well and prepare for the new year.
Bai Jinshang said this to Mo Ruyue on behalf of the crowd. Originally, Bai Shijiao had suggested to him that they bring Mo Ruyues children into the city to celebrate the new year together, and he had thought that it was a good idea.
Bai manor still had enough courtyards and rooms. It wouldnt be a problem even if a few dozen more people stayed there.
However, when he heard that Lady Qin already had other arrangements, he could only regretfully dispel this idea.
Although they couldnt celebrate the new year together, it was possible to take the new years leave in advance. Bai Jinshang was also embarrassed to dy Mo Ruyues various preparations for the new year, so he took the opportunity to tell her today.
Alright, I wont decline then.
When Mo Ruyue heard this, she also agreed very readily.
Madam Bais acupuncture session hade to an end, but Bai Shijiao was still at a bottleneck and needed to rely on diet therapy to get through it slowly. Zhu Zhu did not have to do acupuncture every day, so her weight loss n could be adjusted, so it was not difficult to adjust a few days of leave.
In order to thank Lady Qin, weve also prepared some annual interest. I hope Lady Qin can ept it.
As he spoke, Bai Jinshang waved his hand again, and a group of servants walked over with a tray in their hands.
Didnt Master Bai already send three cartloads of new years goods? Why is he buying more things?
Mo Ruyue looked at the thing in front of her. It was covered with a red cloth and she didnt know what was inside.
Hehe, Lady Qin, theres also a share for our Ouyang family inside!
Uncle Bai didnt bring me with himst time when he was preparing new years goods. Ill have to make up for it this time, Zhu Zhu said with a smile.
Bai Jinshang also said helplessly, Before Brother Ouyang left, he told me that the new years gift for Lady Qin must be prepared. Thest three carriages were just to meet the meat-cutting new year custom on the 24th of the twelfth month, and all of them.
I also thought that there is only one big, five small, and a total of six people in Lady Qins family. If I prepare too much food, Im afraid I wont be able to finish it, so I only prepared a carriage.
When Zhu Zhu heard that she didnt bring her share of the new years gift that I prepared for you, she didnt want to.
When Mo Ruyue heard this, she immediately smiled and said, Is this the final new year gift?
No, Bai Jinshang said with a smile. The one on the 30th of the first month is.
Sure enough, such a rich mans family was very rich, and these were all in small change. Then he could look forward to the new year gift on the 30th of the first month.
Lady Qin, please ept it. Dont you have to go back early to prepare?
While Bai Jinshang was still talking, the servants had already quickly put the things on the tray into a multiyered box. After packing, they were ready to put the box on Big ck.
Give it to me. If you stand behind Big ck, youll piss it off.
Mo Ruyue naturally wouldnt push away the wealth that was delivered to her door. This was all earned through her hard work and sweat. No matter how big the Bai family and the Ouyang family were, it also meant that they recognized her efforts and that she deserved it.
If the main family didnt mind, why would she mind? no fool would think that the money was too little.
That chest needed two servants to carry it, but Mo Ruyue easily took it with one hand. This made the father and son of the Bai family secretly shocked and couldnt help but exchange a look.
It was said that Lady Qin had real martial arts. She had once kicked a man in front of everyone, and now she could easily lift such a heavy box. He really didnt know how unfathomable her skills could be.
Alright, theres no need to see me off. Ill be leaving now. Ille over on the third day of the first lunar month. At that time, we can continue the next step of the treatment. However, we still have to avoid what we need to avoid. We cant let them go just because Im not around and theres no one to supervise.
Mo Ruyue reminded them again. Although she said that, she was still at ease with Bai Shijiao and Zhu Zhu.
No matter what age a woman was, they were extremely sensitive to beauty, especially after they had a partner who couldpare with them. Thatpetitive mind was enough for them to supervise and restrain each other.
After leaving the Bai family, Mo Ruyue rushed home at full speed.
Today was the day to wash the Fortune. They had to take a bath and wash the clothes to get rid of a years bad luck. Mo Ruyue thought that when she got home, the sun was just right, so she would take out all the clothes, nkets, and bedding at home to wash and dry. Although it was a little troublesome, it didnt seem so hard with her babies working by her side.
As soon as she reached the entrance of the courtyard, she heard a burst ofughtering from the courtyard. Looking through the slightly open courtyard door, the courtyard was already full of torn-down bedsheets and all kinds of clothes.
So theyve already started.
Mo Ruyue muttered.
She also knew that half a day was not enough to wash out so many things, so the babies all started working early in the morning. It seemed that she had missed out on some time.
However, she didnte back empty-handed today, so she should be able to see the surprised expressions of her babiester.
She roused her spirits and shouted, Im back.
Mother is back!
Mother is back!
Mother, youre back so early today!
...
Chapter 306 - 306 The Function Of The Waist Token
306 The Function Of The Waist Token
The babies in the courtyard rushed out and surrounded Mo Ruyue, chattering away.
Mo Ruyue didnt feel that it was noisy at all as she was surrounded by them. This was the atmosphere of a family that she wanted.
Mother, whats that Big ck is carrying? Did you buy anything good from the city again?
San Bao was the first to go and get the horse, and he was also the first to notice the box hanging on the horses back.
Mother, did you buy us new years gifts? I saw that Qingfei and the others were all wearing new clothes, silk flowers, and new stationery for the new year.
Er Bao was pulled back by Da Bao as soon as he said this. He immediately turned to look at him and asked in surprise, Big Brother, why are you pulling me?
Mother has just returned. Let her rest and catch her breath.
Mo Ruyue could understand Da Baos true intentions. He was afraid that Er Baos words would bring back bad memories and make her feel guilty.
This child looked boorish on the outside, but he was very meticulous. To some extent, he was even more understanding than Er Bao.
Lady Qin, as soon as you came back, the babies thoughts all flew to you. They threw away the work in their hands.
Aunt Liu walked out of the courtyard and looked at this scene of a loving mother and a filial son. She was very emotional, but she started to tease him.
Aunt Liu, sorry to trouble you again. Mo Ruyue also smiled and greeted her.
Tsk, what kind of trouble is this? I should be thanking you for inviting us to spend the new year together.
Aunt Liu shook her head. She didnt feel tired at all. With these babies aspany, the old couples days were getting more and more exciting.
Mo Ruyue saw Aunt Lius heartfelt smile and couldnt help but think that if she were to leave with the babies, the old couple would probably return to their cold and lonely days. She didnt know how long it would take for them to adapt.
However, there was no banquet that didnte to an end in this world. Meeting and parting continuously, this was life.
Grandma Liu, Mother came back early today, and theres one more person working in the afternoon. Ill definitely be able to finish washing everything today!
When Tang Tang came out, she was carrying her own clothes. She was so excited that she forgot about it. It was only when she heard Aunt Lius voice that she remembered it and quickly showed her the clothes.
Oh my, my little baby, look at your hands. Theyre all red from the cold. Why didnt you put down your clothes? why are you in such a hurry to act like a spoiled child to your mother?
Aunt Liu rebuked. She quickly took the clothes from Tang Tangs hands and covered her hands with her hands, breathing hot air.
Aunt Liu, lets go in and talk. Da Bao, you and Er Bao carry the things down. Be careful, theres something inside that you cant touch.
Mo Ruyue walked over and led everyone into the house.
Anyway, the work couldnt be finished in a short time, so she decided to take a rest and open the blind box first. She still didnt know what gifts the Ouyang and Bai families had sent, so she was also very curious.
Lady Qin, how about this, Ill go home to take a look first. The clothes at home havent been washed. Ille back for work in the afternoon after youve eaten and taken a break.
Aunt Liu also saw the big box and knew what kind of gift Mo Ruyue had brought back. If she was there, it wouldnt be convenient for her to open it, so she took the initiative to leave to avoid suspicion.
Mo Ruyue didnt ask her to stay. She had also prepared a generous new year gift for the Liu family. She could use this time to tidy it up and give it out when it was the new year.
After Aunt Liu left, Mo Ruyue gathered all the babies and asked Er Bao to prepare the ount books. They were ready to start counting the ounts.
It was no exaggeration to say that the things in the Qin familys warehouse were much more valuable than the warehouses of many rich families.
Mother, the new years gift that the Bai family sentst time has also been registered. Do you want to take a look first?
Er Bao held an extra booklet in his hand, which recorded the three carriages of new years goods sent by the Bai family.
Because the treatment for the mother and daughter of the Bai family did not mention the consultation fee and medical expenses, in order to avoid confusion, Er Bao made an extra booklet as a note.
Im done. This batch isnt finished yet. Old Master Bai said that there will be more gifts on new years eve. Mo Ruyue shook her head. From the perspective of the consultation fee, it was already too much. But for the Bai family, three lives could not be reced by mere money. Although they would not give all their wealth to Mo Ruyue, it would be more like an insult to themselves if they gave too little.
The babies were already used to seeing their mother making money so well, but when the box was opened and the things in theyers of horizontal shelves were taken out, their eyes were fixed on it.
The topmost grid was filled with small ornaments that even a child could hold. Each of them was small and exquisite and extremely cute. They looked like a set, and the material was only tourmaline.
On the second grid was a set of hair essories, made with gold and Jade.
On the third grid was also a set of jewelry. It was Emerald with an excellent water source. Just that pair of earrings alone could buy more than half of the county.
On the fourth grid were three booklets. One was the title deed, one was the title deed, and one was a list. Just by looking at the thickness of the three booklets, it was not difficult to imagine how many title deeds were in there.
The space in thest grid was thergest, but it was a box over another box. When it was removed to the end, a simple waist token was revealed, on which the word Ouyang were written.
Mo Ruyue really couldnt tell what the waist token was made of. It had the texture of Jade and was slightly cold to the touch. After a while, it became slightly warm. It felt like warm Jade, but it wasnt warm Jade.
She didnt think too much about it. She would know the material after she tested it in the tool room in her space. There was no need to think about it now.
The most important thing was the use of this waist token.
It should have the same function as the no-walking waist buckle that the Bai family had given her m before, which was a token that could be used to seek help.
This was much more practical than giving a mountain of gold and silver. After all, a mountain of gold and silver could be used up eventually. However, this token did not indicate how many times it could be used. It might be a life-saving straw at some critical moment.
Er Bao took down notes while reading. When he finished writing, his hands were shaking.
These were all valuable things. If they were to just leave them at home, were they not afraid of attracting thieves?
Even if his mothers martial arts were extremely high and no one in the entire Qin Vige dared to have any ideas about the family, if the news were to be leaked and even more thieves were attracted, even if his mother had three heads and six arms, it would be like a good tiger couldnt hold up against a pack of wolves!
Er Baos mind immediately filled with scenes, and his palms immediately broke out in a cold sweat.
Mo Ruyue looked up inadvertently and saw Er Baos appearance. His eyes were straight, his teeth were clenched, and the pen in his hand was almost broken by him. His fingers were clenched so tightly that they turned white, as if he had used up all his strength.
Chapter 307 - 307 A Snake Or A Rabbit Is Bound To Be Rich
307 A Snake Or A Rabbit Is Bound To Be Rich
She was startled, but after thinking for a moment, she almostughed out loud.
However, it was nothing serious. It was just that the child had not seen such a big scene and was frightened by the huge wealth that fell from the sky.
If he knew that someone had ced a bag of gold notes on the beam of their house, which was not much worse than this, he would probably roll his eyes and faint.
That wouldnt do. He didnt look like someone who was going to do big business in the future.
Its better to have mountains of gold and silver in your hands without changing your expression.
Mo Ruyue secretly made a decision in her heart. In the future, she would properly show Er Bao the world and let him know to what extent one could be called rich.
The 28th of the twelfth lunar month was the first day of Mo Ruyues official annual leave. Todays task was to make noodles.
Originally, she thought that she only needed to prepare food for the night of New Years Eve, but she didnt expect Aunt Liu to tell her to prepare enough food until the fifth day of the new year.
After the new year, there will be a few days where we can not start a fire to cook. If we do not prepare more things, we will go hungry.
Eh? Isnt this the custom of the Hanshi Festival? Then there should be a rule before the Qingming Festival in April next year, right?
When Mo Ruyue heard this, she was stunned. Although she wasnt very sensitive to these festivals, there was a little girl in the organization who was a festival fanatic. Whether it was ancient or modern, Chinese or foreign, she was very familiar with all kinds of festivals.
On the day of every festival, she had to bring her partner and good friends to celebrate, and the momentum couldnt be small. So after a long time, even people like Mo Ruyue who didnt celebrate at all could talk about the customs and customs of a few festivals.
Hanshi Festival? This name is nice and appropriate, but we do it to pay respects to our ancestors and wee the spring, so its called the Spring Festival.
Aunty Liu gave apletely different exnation. At this time, Mo Ruyue also remembered that she had transmigrated to a world in a novel. The background was based on the ancient China of her previous life, but the setting did not have to be exactly the same. She was a little too rigid with her appearance.
The Spring Festival in this time and space started on the second day of the new year and ended on the fifth day. During these three days, fireworks were forbidden, and only cold food could be eaten, so a lot of noodles had to be made.
Mo Ruyues skills had been certified by the babies and the Liu couple. When she made all kinds of exquisite noodles, she was not any worse than her skills and medical skills.
Aunt Liu had a set of flower patterns at home that were specially used to press the dough. However, whenpared to the set that Mo Ruyue brought out, it instantly paled inparison.
Mo Ruyues set was a new years gift from the Bai family. As long as it was useful for the new year, everything was on the custom-made list, regardless of size.
Not only must it be easy to use, but it must also be beautiful and fun to y with!
So when Mo Ruyue took out the purple sandalwood flower mold to press the pattern, those who were not experts would not be able to see the trick in her hands.
Lady Qin, your flower model is purple and lustrous. It also has a fragrance. Its really beautiful and fragrant. Dont say that when arge family makes a move, they give out good things. If it were me, I wouldnt be willing to use it. Ill just put it out and y with it.
Aunt Liu looked at the model and praised it.
We have to use it no matter how good it is. Just by looking at it, its already putting the cart before the horse. Aunt, its not even as good as your walnut flower model.
Mo Ruyue said disapprovingly.
She had used a lot of good things in her life, suffered a lot, and enjoyed a lot of happiness. Now that she was reborn, she felt a lot more emotional, but also less emotional.
Madam Qin, ah, you, ah, this is a well-fed man who doesnt know the hunger of a hungry man. Some people cant even ask for such a blessing.
Aunt Liu wasnt envious of Mo Ruyues wealth. She had always been a person who was content with what she had. It was just that when she saw something good, she couldnt avoid it like everyone else.
Mother, look at the rabbit Im pinching!
Tang Tang stayed by Mo Ruyues side and imitated her to pinch the dough.
Ever since she started school, she rarely used the same words. asionally, she would say a sentence or two unconsciously, which made her look extremely cute and innocent.
She was imitating the model of a snake-like rabbit, with a big snake coiled on the rabbits body.
There was a saying that a snake and a rabbit were bound to be rich.
It meant to hope for the people to be rich and the country to be strong.
Mo Ruyues snake rabbit, even the pattern of the scales on its body and the texture of the rabbits hair could be pressed to perfection. But looking at Tang Tangs rabbit, one could tell that it was a rabbit and not a pig from its long ears and body size. However, the long rope on its body was more like a hemp rope, but it was impossible to tell that it was a snake.
It indeed is a cute little rabbit. You pinched it so well!
Mo Ruyueplimented without changing her expression. Not only did she give her a p, but she also pinched Tang Tangs cheeks and rubbed flour all over her face.
Mother, you said that honest children dont lie. Then why would honest adults lie?
Si Bao, who was standing on the other side of Mo Ruyue, happened to be ying with the snake and the rabbit. After he saw the scene just now, he immediately retorted.
If Tang Tangs is good, what about mine?
He also picked up the one in his hand and ced it next to Tang Tangs snake-like rabbit.
Qin Qinghaos talent in cooking had long been revealed. He had already kneaded a small snake rabbit to 70-80% of Mo Ruyues craftsmanship. He was only a child of a few years old now. No one could imagine how far he would go on this path in the future.
Therefore, putting the two snake-like rabbits together was like a public p to Tang Tangs face.
However, Tang Tang wasnt angry. Instead, sheughed and said, Brother, of course yours is better. Other than Mothers cooking, no one in our family can beat you. I didnt lose in vain.
As long as Mo Ruyue was not at home, Si Bao would take care of everything in the kitchen. His siblings were only worthy of being his assistants. Tang Tang knew her position very well, so of course, she would not argue with Si Bao over this kind of thing.
Tang Tang is so obedient. Youre so sensible at such a young age. Aiya, when you grow up, what kind of family will be worthy of you in the future! If I were your mother, I wouldnt be willing to let you get married. Theres only one sweet little jacket, and once you get married, youll belong to someone else!
Aunt Liu, who was listening from the side, smiled with her eyes narrowed, and her mouth could not help but praise Tang Tang.
She did not neglect Si Bao either. She picked up his snake-coiled rabbit and said while sizing it up, Si Baos culinary skills are simply inherited from his mother. In the future, everyone in the world will be proud to be able to taste your culinary skills.
Mo Ruyue also looked at the two babies with a smile on her face, and then looked at the other babies who were helping to make the dough, roll the dough, and knead it. Her heart was filled with warmth and satisfaction.
Everyoneughed as they worked, and unknowingly, the sun had already risen to the middle of the sky. It was almost time to cook lunch.
Si Bao put down the dough in his hand, dusted off the flour on his palm, and said to Mo Ruyue, Mother, Ill go prepare lunch. Lets have noodles and soup today?
Chapter 308 - 308 Respect Between Brothers
308 Respect Between Brothers
Mo Ruyue was about to answer when she suddenly frowned slightly. Then, a familiar voice came from outside the door. Da Bao, Er Bao, Tang Tang? Is anyone home?
Madam Wang? What is she doing here?
Mo Ruyue didnt say anything, but Aunt Lius brows furrowed tightly.
Her words were filled with contempt and disdain, unlike the Qin familys second branch daughter-inw, Madam Wang, who had a little sympathy and pity in the past. Now, she couldnt find even half of it.
Aunt Liu, from what youve said, it seems that you have some opinions about Madam Wang?
Mo Ruyue had not been in the vige for a long time. She had gone on a few long trips before. After that, she had to treat the mother and daughter of the Bai family. She had to leave early and returnte every day. She had been at home for less than one-third of the time. Of course, she did not know what had happened in the vige.
Lady Qin, you dont know this, but ever since old Lady Qin went to prison, Madam Wang and her two children have had a hard time. Qin Xu isnt a good person. Hes not at home all day long. When hees back, hell ask for money. When he cant get it, hell rob the family and sell it.
He didnt even give a single cent of the money he earned from selling it to the mother and children. He only cared about his own happiness. I dont know what happened to Madam Wang, but she went to the vige chief and cried outside the house every day, saying that he, the patriarch, didnt care about anything and let Qin Xu bully her and her children. If he couldnt call Qin Xu back, she would hang herself in front of the house with the two children!
When Aunt Liu said this, she deliberately strangled her neck with her hand and stuck out her tongue, making her look like a hanged ghost with her eyes rolling back. The babies couldnt helpughing.
After the vige chief found Qin Xu, Madam Wang went crazy and wanted to cut him with a knife. She said that if he didnt give her money, the whole family would die together. Qin Xu originally wanted to solve his problems by beating people up like before, but he didnt expect to be beaten up by Madam Wang. In the end, he was scared and ran away after throwing a little money.
Since then, Madam Wang went to the vige head every two or three days to make a fuss. They asked for money when they ran out of money, and they asked for food when they ran out of food. Tsk tsk, theyve really thrown all their face away. Wheres the gentle, virtuous, and weak spirit that they used to have?
Now, whoever in the vige doesnt say anything about her is a shrew. Just look, shes angry that your family has so many good things, so shes here to cry and sell her poor goods!
Aunt Liu said this without caring that there was someone waiting outside the courtyard. Mo Ruyue, of course, did not care about Madam Wang. Back then, she pretended to be a little white flower and allowed her two children to bully her five babies, one in the open and one in the dark. Mo Ruyue had not settled the score with her yet.
She paid attention to the babies reactions and found that they also looked impatient. Madam Wang must havee to visit when she was not at home. She wondered if the babies had given her something.
She had never heard the babies mention this before, but it didnt matter. She had plenty of time to ask themter.
Is there anyone at home? Iming in.
Madam Wang would not back out just because no one answered. It was best if no one answered, so that she coulde in and take a look.
Everyone in the vige knew that the Qin family had many good things in their big house. Even if she just randomly picked a few, it would be enough for her family to spend the new year.
Get out.
Suddenly, a cold voice came from the kitchen, and then something flew out from it and hit Madam Wangs head.
Although the thing was soft on her forehead, it still hurt when she was hit.
Aiyo, my head!
Madam Wang screamed and fell to the ground.
When she saw the person who came out of the kitchen, she immediately cried out in her heart.
Why didnt Mo Ruyue enter the city today?
Didnt they say that she had been going to the city every day to treat the Bai family members of Guani building? Moreover, it was the kind that could not be stopped.
She had precisely calcted that Mo Ruyue wouldnt be here today, so she came to ask for money. The Qin family had so many good things that they wouldnt be able to use up even if they ate and used them for a few lifetimes. What was wrong with giving a little to the three of them through the cracks of her fingers?
Back then, when they had not split up, if it was not for the fact that she still cared about family ties and left more work for Da Bao to do, then gave him a bowl of food to feed his four siblings, the five of them would have long starved to death!
Even if it was to repay the five of them, she should at least show some appreciation.
Not only had Madam Wang been corrupted, but her mood had also been seriously distorted.
It was clear that the first household was not living well, and she was the one who was giving out alms and pity, but now it had suddenly changed. The first households days were getting better and better, and she, had to live with the image of a shrew.
When she first married into the Qin family, who didnt praise her as a beautiful and gentle wife? but now?
The more Madam Wang thought about it, the more unbnced she felt. She didnt even care about her fear, but she didnt notice that her twisted expression had fallen into Mo Ruyues eyes.
What are you doing here?
Mo Ruyue walked over and looked down at Madam Wang from above. He asked in a cold tone, and there was no trace of a smile on his face.
S-sister-inw, youre home.
Madam Wang squeezed out a smile. As she greeted Mo Ruyue, her mind spun quickly, trying toe up with a countermeasure.
If Mo Ruyue was at home, todays n might not work out.
Weve already separated. Im not worthy of the title sister-inw.
Mo Ruyue wouldnt fall for her tricks. It was best not to use this kind of tricks in front of her.
How could that be? Although weve split up, Big Brother is still Big Brother, and Big Sister-inw is still Big Sister-inw. Even if Big Brother is no longer here, youre still Big Brothers widow, so naturally, I have to respectfully call you Big Sister-inw.
Before Madam Wang married, she had also learned how to write from her elder brother for a few days. She had boasted that she was more talented than the average woman and was always eloquent when she spoke.
However, she was half a bottle of vinegar. She spoke as if she didnt ask anything and didnt know anything. It was just that the people of the Qin Vige were less educated and were intimidated by her. However, it also didnt work in front of Mo Ruyue.
What do you want? If you dont have anything to say, then get lost.
Today was a rare good day. Mo Ruyues mood was originally extremely good, but someone just had to bring bad luck to her door and make her ufortable. Then, dont me her for not giving her face.
Madam Wang had been told to get lost twice in a row. No matter how thick-skinned she was, her face was now flushed red. She bit her lips hard for a long time before she managed to squeeze out a sentence.
Sister-inw, did I offend you? Why are you so ruthless? If Big Brother was still here, he would not allow you to do this. Hes the most respectful brother, so why are you treating me like this when hes not here?
When Mo Ruyue heard this, he sneered. Thats called being respectful to brothers.
Madam Wangs face turned red from Mo Ruyues scolding. She used the action of tucking her messy hair behind her ears to slightly cover up her embarrassment.
Chapter 309 - 309 Are You Serious?
309 Are You Serious?
Sister-inw, its fine as long as you understand what I mean. I was a little anxious just now, so I said something wrong.
As Madam Wang spoke, she pretended to wipe her eyes and said while sobbing, Sister-inw, which family in our vige isnt happily buying new years goods in preparation for the new year? Look at our house, its cold and deserted. Not to mention the new years goods, theres not even a few grains of rice to put in the pot. How can we celebrate the new year?
You should have gone to look for Qin Xu instead of wasting your time looking for me.
Mo Ruyue would not listen to her. She was not the one who caused the current situation of the Qin familys second branch. She could go to whoever was the culprit!
Aunt Liu also came out of the kitchen. She leaned over to Mo Ruyues ear and whispered, Lady Qin, why dont you give her some rice and meat and send her away? Before this, she didnt just make a scene in front of the vige heads house. Shes also made a scene in many of our viges families with a little bit of surplus food.
But she wont ask for much. Just give her some food and shell leave.
Mo Ruyue shook her head. This kind ofpromise was not the fundamental solution.
Others were afraid of Madam Wang making a scene, but she wasnt. She wanted to see if Madam Wang would dare to bring her son and daughter to her house to hang themselves if she really refused!
Although Aunt Lius voice was soft, Madam Ne Wang could still hear a few words. She didnt wait for Mo Ruyue to speak and immediately shook her head and waved her hand. No, no, Aunt Liu, you misunderstood me. Im not here to ask for anything. I want to ask Sister-inw to help me get something from my mother-inw!
Youre not thinking about the key to the Qin familys money box, are you? Mo Ruyues eyes narrowed slightly.
Madam Wang smiled bitterly. Sister-inw, its not that I want to have that idea. This suggestion was made by my mother-inw herself.
Next, she exined the sequence of events.
Lets go back to the 26th of December.
Madam Wangs eyes immediately turned red when she saw three carriages full of new years goods stop at Mo Ruyues house.
She looked at how others were earning a pot full of money and could celebrate the new year in full bloom. Then she looked at how her own family was almost unable to feed. As long as she thought about how the Qin family became like this after Mo Ruyue sent Qin Shi to prison, her heart felt like it was scratched by a cat. She wanted to rush to the Qin familys first household and snatch everything.
However, when she thought of Mo Ruyues methods, she immediately gave up on this idea and turned her eyes to another family.
Soon, Madam Wang was standing outside the vige heads house. This time, she did not cry anymore. She held a bamboo stool in one hand and a hemp rope in the other. She stood under a crooked tree not far from the door, threw the hemp rope in her hand onto a branch, and then tied a dead knot.
Just as she stepped on the bamboo stool, the vige head, who had received the news, rushed out of the courtyard and roared, Second Qins Wife, what are you doing!
Madam Wangs reaction was extremely fast. She quickly stood on the bamboo stool, put her head into the rope, and threatened, Donte any closer. If youe any closer, Ill die in front of you!
She pretended to kick the bamboo stool, and as expected, the vige chief was so frightened that he stopped in his tracks.
The hemp rope Madam Wang chose was the thickest kind of rope. Once she was hung up, the weight of her body and the tightened hemp rope would immediately snap her neck, leaving her no chance to save her.
She was afraid that the rope she chose was too thin and would give the vige chief a chance to save her. If she was saved directly, she would not be able to pose a threat at all.
Therefore, she deliberately chose the thickest rope so that the vige chief could judge how determined she was to die at a nce. This way, he would not dare to act rashly.
But Madam Ne Wang also had to be extra careful not to really kick over the bamboo stool. That would really make things worse, and she would have to die even if she didnt want to.
Fortunately, everything was going ording to her n. The vige chief had indeed judged that they could not go forward to save the people, so when he heard her words, he immediately stopped and shouted, Second Qins Wife, dont be impulsive! We can discuss everything, dont do anything stupid!
The other vigers who had been rmed also came out of their houses one after another. When they saw this scene, they were all stunned.
Although Madam Wang had also threatened to hang herself at the drop of a hat in the past, she had always only said it verbally. As time passed, no one believed her. However, no one had expected that she would actually put it into action today.
Just as everyone was gathering around them, the vige chief was still busy preventing them from getting too close. He was afraid that they would frighten Madam Wang and cause her to hang herself in the midst of panic.
Back off, back off! No one is allowed toe over!
He shouted at the top of his lungs. It was obviously the coldest day of the winter, but he was sweating all over. In the blink of an eye, the inner clothes on his body were soaked through by cold sweat.
The new year was just around the corner. If someone were to die at this time, the entire vige would not be able to celebrate the new year in peace. As the vige chief and the n leader, he would not be able to answer to the entire n.
The onlooking vigers stopped in their tracks and stood far away. No one took another step closer, but their discussion still reached Madam Wangs ears.
Why are you here again? It seems like youre serious this time?
What bad luck. The new year ising. If you want to die, you should die in the back mountain. Why let everyone be infected with bad luck?
Thats right. This happens every two or three days. I dont believe that she would really abandon her son and daughter to die!
Although such voices were the majority, there were also some voices full of worry. Dont say anymore. If Madam Wang heard this and provoked her to death, what would we do?
Sigh. She has been living a good life for so long, but now shes like this. Shes been holding it in for too long. Its all because of that Qin Xu. He didnt care about his wife and children and was forced to court death. Isnt he afraid of retribution?
When Madam Wang heard these words, her heart was also deste. However, when she thought of her purpose ining here, her heart immediately hardened.
It was because she had a son and a daughter that she had to do this. Even if the whole vige looked down on her, she would do it!
Big Sister-inw, dont be impulsive. What grievances do you have? You can talk it out. Im the patriarch of the Qin family. I wont just stand by and do nothing.
The vige head could only soften his voice tofort Madam Wang, but in his heart, he was already cursing her and Qin Xu.
Vige Chief, I dont want to make things difficult for you, but the people in the vige can see what kind of life my family has been living. If it wasnt for the fact that I couldnt survive, I wouldnt be in this state.
As soon as Madam Wang opened her mouth, bean-sized tears rolled down her cheeks.
Yes, yes, yes. We all saw it. Thats why everyone is trying their best to help your family. Youre going to hang yourself the moment you arrive, and you dont even give us a reason. How can we help you?
The vige chief quickly followed her words and at the same time, took a step forward.
Vige Chief, I know that everyone pitied us, so they gave us some rice to fill our stomachs, but this isnt the solution! Its not like the second branch of the Qin family doesnt have money or property deeds. How could my children and I starve to death? I wont ept this, even if I be a ghost!
Chapter 310 - 310 Threatening With Death
310 Threatening With Death
When she said this, the vige chief came to a realization. It turned out that Madam Wangs purpose was to get Qin familys private money!
As the son of the Qin family, Qin Xu could also inherit the real estate andnd deeds, so he could secretly sell the fields for money, but Madam Wang couldnt.
She was only the Qin familys daughter-inw. Even if she dared to sell thend, no one would dare to buy it.
Although Qin Shi was still in prison, the real estate andnd were all under her name. In the future, once she came out and found out that thend had been sold, she could easily get thend back whether she went to the vige or reported it to the government.
!!
At that time, it would only be the person who bought thend who lost the money and had nond. It would not be so easy to ask for money from Madam Wang, so smart people would not buynd from Madam Wang at all.
The poultry and livestock of the Qin family had all been sold by Qin Xu. Madam Wang really couldnt find anything else to sell. If they didnt borrow from the owner, they wouldnt be able to survive.
Therefore, it was understandable that she had no choice but to target the private money in the hands of the Qin family.
Madam Wang, just tell me, how do you want me to help you? Ive looked for Qin Xu many times, but he doesnt show up at all. The people Ive sent have also failed several times. Its not that we dont want to help you, you should understand.
The vige chief didnt have the patience to beat around the bush. If she lost her bnce on the stool and slipped, the rope would snap her neck in an instant. There was no chance of saving her.
Madam Wang also thought so. Since the vige chief had asked directly, she said bluntly, I want to invite the vige chief to follow me into the city to visit my mother-inw and ask her to take out the key to the money box. At least, she will leave us some money to live on, and we wont have to bother the vigers.
The vigers immediately broke out into an even louder discussion, and the way they looked at Madam Wang changed.
What a nice way to put it. What money can keep the mother and children alive? Im afraid shell just take the money and run away!
Dont tell me, its really possible! Back then, the Qin familys eldest son had left behind many good things, and they were all in the hands of Old Madam Qin! At that time, when we went to court topensate Lady Qin, wasnt it old Lady Qin who paid for it in the end?
Thats right. When she gets the house andnd deeds, shell sell them directly to foreigners. Old Madam Qin is still in prison, and Qin Xu is missing. The way I see it, Madam Wang definitely doesnt have any good intentions!
The vige head heard everyones words and had the same thought in his heart. However, he could not say it out loud and could only put it in a more tactful way.
Qin Familys Second Daughter-inw, that key is the olddys life. Shes in prison and cante out, so she might not give you the key. If I were to take it, I am after all not a member of the Qin family and it is still uncertain whether she would believe me or not. I am afraid that I would not be able to bear such a great responsibility.
He couldnt wait for Old Madam Qin to not believe him. Otherwise, the key would be a hot potato in his hands. Who could guarantee that Od Madam Qin wouldnt bite back and say that she had lost a lot of money, jewelry, and other precious items?
She was a person who would leech off others. She would ask for a few scallions and vegetables from anyones house when she passed by. How could she easily give up such an opportunity to extort money?
Madam Wang smiled sadly, and a string of tears fell from her eyes. She said sadly, Thats why I knew that you would definitely reject me. In that case, I might as well just die. Its better than watching the children starve to death.
As she spoke, she stretched her neck into the rope, closed her eyes, and prepared to kick the stool.
Mother! Mother! Dont leave us behind, Mother!
Ah! A shrill cry came from the distance. Everyone turned around and saw Qin Qingyuan and Qin Qingfei stumbling over from the distance.
The two ran with disheveled hair and tear-streaked faces. They didnt have the clean and decent appearance they usually had in front of others. They ran to the back of the crowd and tried to squeeze forward.
Mother, if youre leaving, take us with you. Dont leave us siblings behind!
Qin Qingyuan seemed to have gone crazy. He tried his best to squeeze his way forward. The vigers in front of him immediately reached out to stop him, but none of them could stop him. They had to work together before they could barely catch him.
However, he couldnt care about the other side. Qin Qingfei was as slippery as a loach. She had already made her way to the front of the human wall and was running toward Madam Wang without a care.
The vige chief was scared out of his wits. He immediately chased after Qin Qingfei and grabbed her arm tightly, pulling her back.
Later, a few more roe deers caught up and took Qin Qingfei from the vige chiefs hands. Only then did they hold on to her tightly and not dare to let go.
The two children kept crying and struggling, screaming that they wanted to go with their mother. The harsh cries annoyed everyone, but they didnt dare let go and could only continue to hold on tightly.
Qingyuan, Im sorry. I cant ask the vige chief to help us find a way out. Ill leave first. You You can follow the vigers. At least you can have a hundred families to feed you. You can slip away until your grandmother is out of prison. Everything will be fine in the future!
Madam Wang continued to cry andin. It sounded like she was telling the brother and sister to live on well, but her words were all forcing the vige chief to agree to her conditions. Otherwise, her death would be caused by the vige chiefs indifference and inaction.
Not only did the vige chief understand what she said, but the entire vige also understood.
Everyone looked at each other and finally turned their eyes to the vige chief, waiting for him to make the final decision.
The vige chiefs face was ashen, and he secretly gritted his teeth. Only now did he realize that he had really underestimated this woman in front of him.
She had specifically targeted his weak spot and had also carefully chosen the timing to do this. She had deliberately done this just before the new year.
His eyes flickered and he knew what was going on. However, he had no other choice in this situation.
Seeing that Madam Wangs neck was already hanging on the rope and one of her feet was shakily stretched out, almost stepping lightly, the vige chief didnt dare to take the risk and quickly shouted, I promise you, Ill go with you!
Madam Wang opened her eyes and carefully steadied herself on the bamboo stool. Then, she turned to look at the vige chief and carefully asked, Vige Chief, are you serious? Dont try to coax me down, you wont be able to.
The vige head had already epted his fate. He knew that he had coaxed her down, but if he went back on his words, this scene would repeat itself. He could only helplessly say, Its true, its true. I mean what I say. Everyone can be my witness.
Madam Wang still refused toply. She looked at the surrounding vigers and asked, Can everyone be my witness?
Ill do as you say.
Quicklye down! Look at how scared the children are!
Be careful ande down slowly!
Everyone agreed to it, and Madam Wang took the opportunity to put forward a second condition: Then its better to be quick. How about today? If we dont hurry up and buy some new year goods, how will the three of us spend the new year?
Chapter 311 - 311 Acting
311 Acting
Alright, Ill ask my boss to get a car. You should go back and prepare. Well meet at the vige entranceter.
The vige head thought that since he had already agreed, he would just let her be. He didnt want her toe and make trouble every other day. No one would be able to stand that.
Madam Wangs wish was fulfilled. She quickly took off the rope and then nimbly jumped off the bamboo stool.
The aunts grip on Qin Qingyuan and Qin Qingfei loosened, and the two little ones broke free. They ran toward Madam Wang, threw themselves into her arms, and started crying.
Qin Qingfei cried her heart out, Madam Wang cried her heart out, and Qin Qingyuan endured it a lot. He bit his lips hard, but his tears fell one by one.
Seeing the three of them crying so miserably, the vige chief couldnt lecture Madam Wang anymore. He could only curse the entire family in his heart.
For the Qin n to have such a family, it was truly eight generations of bad luck.
Alright, arent we going into the city? Hurry up and go, I still have toe back to prepare for the new year.
The vige head impatiently urged when he saw that the three of them were actually crying and did not stop.
Madam ne Wang knew that if she continued to act, she would be overreaching herself. She quickly wiped her tears and said gratefully to him, Ill have to trouble the vige chief then. Ill go home and pack up.
On the way home with the siblings, she kept wiping her tears, but Qin Qingyuan flung her hand away as soon as she entered the house.
Alright, stop acting if no one is watching. Save your energy and act when you see grandmater.
Qin Qingfei, on the other hand, was busy looking at herself in the mirror. When she saw her disheveled appearance, she immediately screamed and hurriedly went to take care of her image.
Qingfei, dont wash your face. When we get into the carriage, the vige chief is still watching! Madam Wang followed closely behind and whispered, afraid that others would hear her if she spoke too loudly.
I know, what are you being so long-winded for?
Qin Qingfeiined impatiently. If her mother wasnt so useless, she wouldnt have to suffer like this.
Although Madam Wang hadpletely given up on her husband, she couldnt let go of her son and daughter no matter what. So, she didnt take Qin Qingfeis attitude to heart. She only med herself for being incapable. Now, she could only barely make ends meet, and it was easy for her to ruin their reputation.
After she returned to the house, she hurriedly packed a few of Qin Shis thick clothes and undergarments. Then, she went to the kitchen and fried thest piece of streaky meat she borrowed into a meat slice and a meat dish. She covered it with a te and wrapped it in cloth, preparing to send it to Qin Shi as a new years gift.
She busied herself at home for the time it takes an incense stick to burn, until the vige heads eldest son came to urge her. Only then did Madam Wang bring her son and daughter, carryingrge and small bags, and ran out.
Im sorry, Vige Chief. I was thinking that its going to be the new year soon, so I should at least bring some clothes and food for Mother. Although I cant bring anything good now, at least its better than her being in prison. Madam Wang said guiltily.
Alright, hurry up and get in the car so we can leave earlier.
The vige chief said with a gloomy face. He helped the two children get on the carriage and immediately rushed to the city.
The prison of the government office was cold and damp. Even in broad daylight, there was only some light when a torch was lit.
Qin Shis cell was close to the door. There was a small window at the top of the cell for venttion. Compared to the cells of the felons in the innermost area, it was rtively dry and clean.
It wasnt the first time Madam Wang hade to visit Madam Qin, but it was the first time the two children hade to such a ce. As soon as they walked to the door of the prison, they watched in private and followed closely behind their mother.
Qin Shi, your daughter-inw is here to see you!
The prison guard shouted towards the cell. He saw a ck shadow moving in the corner. Then, it suddenly pounced toward the wooden fence.
Didnt Qin Xu ask you toe over often? What took you so long? Did you bring me a thick cotton-padded coat? Do you have any meat or vegetables? Hurry up and bring them to me!
The ck shadow was dirty all over, and its ten skinny fingernails were long and covered with mud. It gave off an unpleasant smell.
Ah! Qin Qingfei was so scared that she screamed and stepped back. She stepped on Qin Qingyuans foot and tripped again.
Qingyuan, Qingfei, youre here too? Come, let grandma take a good look!
When Madam Qin heard the scream, she pushed aside the hair covering her eyes. When she saw that Madam Wang had brought her grandson and granddaughter, she immediately smiled.
The person she wanted to see the most was still Qin Qingyuan. As for Qin Qingfei, she was noisy and didnt have a steady appearance at all. She was as good-for-nothing as her useless mother.
Grandma, its almost the new year, so we came to see you. Mother also brought you thick clothes and food. When youe out, welle to pick you up.
Qin Qingyuan took the initiative to step forward and chat with Qin Shi. However, he was so far away that Qin Shi couldnt touch him, and no one could find any fault with him.
Hmph, its hard for her to think of me. She hase here with a purpose, hasnt she?
Qin Shis mouth twitched, and she looked up and down at Madam Wang with suspicious eyes. She hit the nail on the head and hit the nail on the head.
Mother, I made a bowl of stir-fried meat for you. Im holding it in my arms. Its still warm. Quickly try it.
Madam Wang hurriedly took out the bowls and chopsticks first, and then secretly nced at the prison door from the corner of her eye, secretly praying for the vige chief toe in quickly and save her.
Why is there only a bowl of meat? I said I wanted to eat red braised meatst time, and youre just using this to brush me off?
Qin Shis mouth was full of disdain, but her hand snatched the bowl away and randomly stuffed the rice into her mouth.
The vige chief just happened to walk over. After seeing this scene, a trace of disgust shed across his eyes. Immediately after, he greeted Qin Shi, Old Madam Qin, Im here to see you too.
Qin Shi was stunned and then rolled her eyes. She said gloomily, Why is Master Vige Chief here? Are you here tough at this old woman?
She still bore a grudge against the vige chief for not speaking up for her in court. She always felt that as long as he spoke up, Mo Ruyue would be able to let this matter pass, so she immediately began to speak in a strange tone when she saw him.
Initially, the vige chief was forced toe by Madam Wangs methods. In the end, he had been taken advantage of by the Qin n the moment they met. Naturally, he was not happy and his face immediately sank.
Old Madam Qin, youre the one who made it this far. You gossiped about Lady Qin for no reason and even spread it again and again. Its not like she didnt give you a chance. Why are you ming me now?
In the past, Qin Shi could not afford to offend the vige chief, but she had been in prison for so long that her mind had long been distorted. At this time, she could not help but want to pounce on and bite anyone she saw.
Why did they have to live a good life, while she had to eat rotten food and drink sour things in this prison, with lice biting her?
Therefore, as soon as the vige chiefs words fell, Qin Shiughed coldly again. Vige Chief, you didnt have time to teach me a lesson in court that day, and now youre making up for it? Its hard on you to chase me all the way to the prison.
Madam Wang saw that things were not looking good. If she let her mother-inw continue to be so entric, she would offend the vige chief. In the future, after she was released from prison, she would have to return to the Qin Vige to live.
Chapter 312 - 312 The Last Warning
312 The Last Warning
She hurriedly tried to smooth things over. Mother, its the new year. The vige chief said that he wanted to see if you needed anything since youre still suffering in prison. Were all from the same vige. We cant really fall out with each other just because of a few words.
However, the vige head did not appreciate Madam Wangs kindness at all. If it wasnt for her seeking death and forcing him, he wouldnt havee to such an unlucky ce on New Years Eve and even choked on his words for no reason.
Therefore, he nced at Madam Wang coldly and did not beat around the bush. He directly said to Madam Qin, Madam Qin, your second son doesnt go home anymore. He leaves the three of them at home all day and they are barely surviving on the help of the vigers.
Its not that your family doesnt have money, but its all in your hands. Now that theyre living like this, shouldnt you take out some money to feed them?
!!
Qin Shi was originally enjoying her meal, but when she heard the vige chiefs words, she immediately threw her chopsticks down and began to curse.
Great, I knew it, you guys are just weasels paying a New Years visit to a chicken with bad intentions! So its after my retirement money! The three of them, mother and children, even I have to rely on Qin Xu to support me. How can you take your mother-inws money? Vige Chief, have you spent all the money you earned on your daughter-inw?
Old Madam Qin, what are you saying? I came to see you with good intentions, why are you biting me like a Mad Dog?
Qin Shis words were too unpleasant, so the vige chief no longer showed any mercy and said to her directly, Your second son abandoned his wife and daughter. Ive sent people to persuade him several times, but he didnt listen. It seems that I dont have to give him another chance.
Ill say this today. If you want to help your son, then take out the money that can let second daughter-inw and her children live. Otherwise, Ill ask the elders to open the ancestral hall and expel him from the genealogy.
What? Vige Chief, you cant do this!
Originally, Qin Shi didnt take the vige chiefs words to heart. However, when she heard that Qin Xu would be expelled from the genealogy, she immediately got up, grabbed the wooden fence with both hands, and anxiously shouted to the vige chief.
If Qin Xu was really expelled from the genealogy, his life would bepletely over. He would be unable to lift his head anywhere he went, and even Qin Qingyuan and Qin Qingfei would be dragged down by him.
Madam Wang was also shocked. She nced at the vige chief and realized that he did not seem to be joking.
Vige Chief, what do you think this is? It cant be that you want to expel him from the genealogy, right?
She tried to persuade him, but the vige chief waspletely enraged and wouldnt listen to her.
Old Lady Qin, let me tell you. Your family has already caused a huge ruckus in the vige. Who knows how much trouble youve caused us and how many jokes youve made outside the vige?
If youre still holding on to your broken key today, fine, when the ancestral hall is opened, Qin Xu will be expelled from the family tree, and your family will get out of the vige and go wherever you want!
At this time, the vige chief revealed his imposing manner as a n leader. Old Lady Qin saw that she had really angered him, so she didnt dare to be tough.
If, if you want me to hand over the keys, thats fine too.
She admitted defeat. But I have a condition. You must let Mo Ruyue take it personally. I dont trust anyone else!
When the vige chief heard her conditions, he was instantly amused. Youre usually so calctive and mean to Lady Qin, and now youre saying that you dont trust anyone other than her? It seems that youre not ignorant, but youre just pretending. But what face do you have to ask for help?
She, shes still the eldest sons wife after all. Even if we move out, she still has to call me Mother. Besides, shes earning a mountain of gold and silver at home, and she doesnt care about my money. But who knows if other people will take my retirement money and run away!
Madam Qin said it so bluntly that Madam Wang was so embarrassed that she could not show her face.
Her nails dug deep into her palms, but she still had to smile on her face. In her heart, she hated the mother and son to the core.
However, there was no hurry now. There was still a long time for everyone to get along in the future, and there would be a time when she would be able to seek justice.
Madam Wang nced at her son and daughter beside her, then suddenly raised her hand to tuck her hair behind her ear and said to the vige chief, Vige chief, as you can see, my mother only trusts Sister-inw. In the end, Sister-inw has to step in for this matter, but I really dont have the face to ask her for help.
This time, the vige chief did not agree to her request. Instead, he sneered and said, Youre so shameless that youre leaving me to do the shameless things? Madam Wang, dont go too far with your Qin family!
Now that Old Madam Qin has already relented, Ive already done what I promised you. You can think of a way to deal with the next matter! Also, the next time you harass the vigers with your crying, tantrum, and hanging yourself, Ill see if you have the guts to hang yourself!
After the vige chief gave his ultimatum, he walked out of the prison.
So you were the one who caused this. After Mo Ruyue heard such a long string of words, she was already very impatient in her heart. She looked at Madam Wang with a faint smile.
Sister-inw, Im like this because Im at my wits end. Please help me on the ount that I still have a pair of children to raise.
Madam Wangs heart was beating like a drum. She didnt know what Mo Ruyue was thinking, so she could only brace herself and plead for mercy.
What does your familys business have to do with me?
Mo Ruyue said indifferently, and then added, If you still have to hide your family behind your back and make troubles every now and then, then I wont be your sister-inw.
Sister-inw?
Lady Qin!
Mother?
Three different forms of address rang out almost at the same time. The same thing was that other than Mo Ruyue who was still calm, everyone else was shocked and confused.
Lady Qin, you cant joke about this matter. If it gets out, people will gossip.
Aunt Liu nervously nced at Madam Wang and whispered in Mo Ruyues ear.
She always felt that Madam Wangs ears were perked up higher than the sky. Although her eyes were also filled with shock, there was also an unconceble excitement in her eyes.
Sister-inw, I know youre saying this because youre angry that our family has caused you too much trouble, but please dont really have such thoughts! Even if its not for the sake of Big Brother, there are still five children here. Dont tell me you dont want them anymore?
Madam Wang seemed to be persuading her, but her words were mostly instigating. Her eyes kept ncing to the side. The five babies standing beside Mo Ruyue were all looking at her with shock.
Mother, you, you dont want us anymore?
Qin Qingduo was still the first to recover from his shock. Although he knew that he shouldnt have asked such a question under such circumstances, his mouth seemed to have its own thoughts and he blurted it out.
With a don sound, Qin Qingduos head was hit hard. It was so painful that his tears almost came out.
What nonsense are you thinking? How can I not want you guys?
Mo Ruyue shook her head.
Although it was just a sudden inspiration, she felt that she should think about it carefully. However, she had to solve the problem in front of her first before thinking about other things.
Chapter 313 - 313 It Has Nothing To Do With Me
313 It Has Nothing To Do With Me
So after she said this to Qin Qingduo, she turned to look at Madam Wang and said, I dont care what agreement you have with Old Madam Qin. This has nothing to do with me. Im not your servant who cane and go as you please. Its already enough that this happened oncest time.
You can leave now. Dont dy our work.
Madam Wang was originally waiting to see the mother and son fall out, but she didnt expect Mo Ruyue to not continue the topic at all and directly want to kick her out of the door.
Sister-inw, please help us. You cant just watch us die, sister-inw!
!!
Madam Wang immediately panicked. If Mo Ruyue refused to help, then she would never be able to get the key to Madam Qin. Not to mention having a good new year, even how she would live the next few days would be a problem.
Mo Ruyue was not one of those vigers who would be threatened by Madam Wang. Seeing thatmunication was ineffective, she simply took action.
Madam Wang only saw Mo Ruyue walk a few steps to her and gently sp her wrist. A numbing feeling immediately spread throughout her body, and she couldnt muster any strength to resist.
She wanted to struggle, but she felt that Mo Ruyue was only holding her hand and she couldnt help but follow.
The two of them walked all the way to the door before Mo Ruyue let go.
As soon as the force on her wrist disappeared, Madam Wangs body regained its strength.
She originally wanted to use that force to stagger and fall, creating the illusion that she was pushed down by Mo Ruyue. She didnt expect that her body would sway and she would be pulled back by Mo Ruyue.
Madam Wang, you should know that Im a vengeful person, so dont use your self-righteous little tricks on me. Old Madam Qin is a good example for you. I hope you remember.
Mo Ruyue said with a smile.
When she smiled, there were dimples on both sides of her lips, which should be a sweet smile. In Madam Wangs eyes, she couldnt help but shiver.
I, I know, Sister-inw, I wont y any tricks with you. I definitely wont!
Madam Wang forced out a stiff smile. Now, she didnt dare to mention getting the key again, and she didnt even dare to think about getting some new years goods to take away.
Mo Ruyue was toozy to talk nonsense with her, so she turned around and went back to the courtyard.
Madam Wang had a bad start. Not only did she not get any benefits, but she also got a nose full of dust, so she could only walk home dejectedly.
Qin Qingfei was leaning on the window and looking out. As soon as she saw Madam Wang return, she immediately rushed out of the house.
Mother, where are the things? Why did youe back empty-handed? There are so many good things in Aunts house, even if its just a little bit from the gaps between her fingers, its enough for our family. Why are they not even willing to give us this little?
When she saw that Madam Wang had returned empty-handed, the joy and anticipation on her face immediately turned into anger and usation.
Qingfei, your aunt is at home today, so shes
Madam Wang quickly exined, but before she could finish, she was interrupted by Qin Qingfei.
So what if the aunt is at home? Its not like you want a share of her assets. Cant she just give us a little bit of their stuff? Shouldnt she at least repay the favor of giving Qin Qingyan and the others a meal? Qin Qingfei shouted in dissatisfaction.
If youre so good, then go get it. Why are you being so forceful with Mother?
Qin Qingyuan also came out of the house and gave his sister a cold look.
I, I was just in a hurry! Other peoples houses are all waiting for the new year, while our family is still worried about the rice to go into the pot tonight!
Qin Qingfei didnt dare to speak loudly to Qin Qingyuan. She didnt know if she was too anxious or too angry today, but she actually shouted at him. At the beginning, she was very imposing, but as she spoke, her voice became softer and softer. In the end, she closed her mouth under Qin Qingyuans re.
Idiot.
Qin Qingyuan said rudely. He then asked Madam Wang, Mother, has the aunt agreed to see grandmother?
No, she didnt,
Madam Wang sighed. You know what kind of person she is. The tricks I use on others arepletely useless against her. Even if I really hang myself outside her house, she can turn a blind eye and let me hang there until I be a skeleton.
Qingyuan, it seems like we wont be able to get your grandmas key.
Madam Wang was really a little unwilling. She was so close to getting a sum of money, but it just had to be stuck in Mo Ruyues hands. But what could she do?
She couldnt outy Mo Ruyue in terms of schemes, and in terms of tactics, she was someone who could be subdued with one hand. What could she do?
Ive already thought of it. Its no surprise that this result came out.
Qin Qingyuan didnt seem surprised at all, and his calm expression surprised Madam Ne Wang.
Qingyuan, do you have any other ideas? She asked hesitantly.
This son of his was stronger than the four babies of the first household, but no matter how smart a child was, he was still just a child. What ability did he have to fight with Mo Ruyue?
The aunt is indeed difficult to deal with, but my five cousins are not so. No matter how difficult a person is to deal with, they also have their weakness. And mothers weakness, dont you already know it?
Dont worry, the aunt will definitely be willing to help us get the key.
Although Mo Ruyue had sent Madam Wang away, the rxed and happy atmosphere just now had also disappeared.
The five babies stood at the door and stared at her intently, as if they were afraid that she would suddenly disappear.
What are you all doing outside? All of you, arent you cold?
Mo Ruyue asked the obvious, but she didnt have any intention of giving up on that idea.
Lady Qin, youre still talking. I want to ask you, what did you mean by that sentence just now?
Aunt Liu also walked over, holding a half-kneaded dough in her hand.
Dont me me for speaking out of turn. You said that you dont want to be Madam Wangs sister-inw. Could it be that you dont want to be the Qin familys daughter-inw?
She had asked bluntly. She had originally thought about whether she should avoid the five babies, but when she saw that Mo Ruyue was very calm, she couldnt care about this anymore.
If she really had such an idea, she would have to tell the babies sooner orter. She might as well let them hear it clearly now.
Yes, thats what I was thinking. Mo Ruyue also responded calmly.
Originally, I have never met Qin Ming. From the time I married to the time I became a widow, we have never lived together for a day. We dont even have any emotional foundation. If you want me to live my life as a widow, I think thats impossible.
Ive never thought about this question in detail before. Its all thanks to Madam Wang that I came up with this idea with her reminder just now.
Then, what do you n to do? What should we do with the babies?
...
Aunt Liu sighed, Youre just their step-mother, if you dont even have the status of Qin Mings wife, how are you going to take care of these children? After all, they still have their grandmother and uncle. Its not up to you, an outsider, to manage them.
Chapter 314 - 314 I Won’t Give Up On My Babies
314 I Wont Give Up On My Babies
What she said was a very realistic problem. This was also a problem that Mo Ruyue had not carefully considered clearly just now. Now that Aunt Liu had pointed it out, it made her slightly stunned.
When the five babies saw that their mother had be silent, they immediately became nervous. They held each others hands tightly and could feel the sweat on each others palms. When they touched them, they felt that their hands were cold and sticky.
The babies household registration has been removed from the Qin family. Besides, Old Madam Qin is in jail and Qin Xu is not at home. The second family is in a mess. Theres no chance of bing the babies guardians with such conditions.
In short, I wont give up on the babies. Whether its through normal means or abnormal means, the second branch can forget about having any ideas about them.
Mo Ruyue said firmly. These words were not only for Aunt Liu to hear, but also for the babies who were about to cry.
Come. All of you,e here.
She waved at her babies, and when she saw that they still seemed to be hesitating, she took the initiative to walk to their side.
Your little heads should be thinking about how to spend the new year properly now, dont think about such nonsense. Even if you want to do this, youll have to wait until next spring. At that time, Ill take you out of here.
Mo Ruyue dropped another bombshell. This time, not only were the babies surprised, but even Aunt Lius wide-open mouth could fit a duck egg.
Mother, youre saying that youre not going to live in the vige anymore?
Qin Qingyan calmed himself down. He had heard two shocking pieces of news in a row, and it was a little overwhelming.
The Qin family has not given up. As long as we are still living here, this kind of thing can only be banned repeatedly. I think if it happens again, I will take action next time.
Mo Ruyue said it very lightly, but the babies and Aunt Liu could hear the murderous intent in her words. When they thought of her change in personality at the beginning, they had no doubt that she would do what she said.
Alright, if youre all from your mothers side, quickly go back to the house and press out the mold for the noodles. Otherwise, the dough will be wasted when the noodles are dry.
Aunt Liu quickly said and helped to drive the five babies into the house. She still had some things she wanted to ask Mo Ruyue
Although the babies still had a stomach full of questions to ask, they could tell that Grandma Liu had something to say to their mother, so they all obediently went back to their rooms.
Aunt Liu immediately pulled Mo Ruyue to the room next door. As soon as she entered, she asked seriously, Lady Qin, have you seriously considered what you said today? I know that you have a lot of money now and you can live afortable life wherever you go. Leaving this ce should be the best choice, but I still want to ask.
She knew that her words were out of line, but to her, she had long regarded Mo Ruyue, one adult, five children, and six people in total as a family. So when she suddenly heard that they were leaving, she couldnt help but feel down.
Well, Ive thought about leaving a long time ago. After all, the babies will have to go out and see the world in the future. I dont want them to stay in this small mountain vige for the rest of their lives. Even if they dont take the road of imperial examination, they should go further in the future.
As for not being the Qin familys daughter-inw and the custody of the babies, Ill see if there are any relevantws. In short, I wont give up on either of these two points.
When Mo Ruyue said this, she clearly saw Aunt Lius eyes darken for a moment, but when she looked over, she revealed an extremely sincere smile.
Thats good. Your family is a real family, and youre all good people. You deserve to live a better and happier life. Then you should leave. Leave this ce of trouble, and stay away from those who have been plotting against you.
Aunt Liu quickly put away the reluctance in her heart. If Mo Ruyues family could live well, she and her husband would also sincerely wish them well.
Aunt Liu, I actually have an idea that Ive been thinking about for a long time, but I havent found a suitable opportunity to say it. I nned to say it on the 30th, but I think now is a better time.
Mo Ruyue suddenly said something that made Aunt Liu a little confused.
Lady Qin, if you have something to say, just say it. Do we still need to find a suitable time between us?
Aunt Liu could only think of how to deal with the remaining real estate andnd of the Qin familys eldest branch. However, Mo Ruyue could handle this matter on her own and didnt need her help.
Mo Ruyue smiled slightly. I was thinking that Ill leave with the babies in the future. I probably wont return to the Qin family Vige. I just dont know if youre interested ining with us?
Qin Lady Qin, what did you say? I I didnt hear you clearly. When Aunt Liu heard that sentence, her eyes widened in disbelief.
She only recovered after a long time and asked carefully. She wanted to ask clearly, afraid that it was just her illusion.
I was just asking if you and Uncle Liu would be willing toe with us when the timees?
When Mo Ruyue saw Aunt Lius careful appearance, she suddenly felt a burst of sadness. At the same time, she was even more determined in her thoughts.
But, but our were not and we cant help
Aunt Liu was really too excited. She never thought that she would hear such words from Mo Ruyues mouth.
Not only was she going to leave with the babies, but she was also going to take the couple with her?
However, no matter how good the rtionship between the two families was now, they were not blood-rted in the end. What kind of identity did the couple have to stay by the side of this family?
Aunt Liu, as you know, I have more and more things to do now, and I dont have much time to take care of the children. But with the two of you by my side, I can leave without worry and go do my own things.
The babies get along very well with the two of you. Weve long regarded you as a family, so even if were leaving, we thought that you two might be willing toe with us.
Mo Ruyue patiently exined, but she was also worried that she might be overthinking things.
It was often said that the leaves returned to their roots. For the Liu couple, the older they were, the more they didnt want to leave their hometown.
I dont know about this I I have to go back and tell my husband.
Aunt Liu was in a state ofplete confusion. This news came too suddenly, making her still feel dizzy. She was unable to think about all the rted problems.
Theres no rush. I originally wanted to ask you on the 30th night. Even if Im leaving, itll be next spring at the earliest. Im not in a hurry to wait for your answer now. Theres still a lot of time to slowly think about it.
Mo Ruyue knew that this news was too much of a shock for Aunt Liu, so she was not in a hurry for an answer.
She hadnt decided on the school for her babies yet, and she still had to think about where to settle down. It was still early, so there was still time.
Chapter 315 - 315 Gift
315 Gift
After this little interlude, everyone started to make noodles again. They were busy until dusk and smoke was lit up in every household.
When Aunt Liu left, she was holding arge bowl of noodles in her hand, and Qin Qingyan, who was also holding arge bowl of noodles, followed her.
Qingyan, you really dont have to send me off. Ille backter.
Aunt Liu said to Qin Qingyan as she walked out.
Although she had helped the Qin family for a day, she had also brought out the familys noodles.
Its fine, Grandma Liu. Its just a few steps. Its not like Im tired.
Qin Qingyan shook his head. He handed the torch to Aunt Liu and said, Why dont you help me with the torch and Ill take this.
As he spoke, he wanted to take the basin from Aun Lius hands.
Dont. How can I let you take everything? Lets do it together.
As the two of them walked back and forth, Mo Ruyue came over with a pot of noodles and handed it to Qin Qingyan.
Take this pot as well. The cold food festival is going tost for several days, so its always good to prepare more.
In addition to the noodles made today, there were so many pastries, candies, and other things at home. There was really an endless supply of food to eat. It was better to give more of these noodles to the Liu couple.
Look at what youre saying. I was here to help you, but now I have to take more.
Aunt Liu said embarrassedly, but she also knew that since Mo Ruyue had given it to her, there was no reason for her to take it back.
Grandma Liu, just take it. We dont have much in our house, but we eat the most. You know that too.
Qin Qingduo walked over with a smile, holding two boxes of various pastries in his hands. It seemed that he was also going to send them to the Liu couples house.
In the end, the three of them left together. Mo Ruyue stood at the door and nced at them, then turned around and went back to the yard.
Soon, it was Chinese New Years Eve. At night, they would set off firecrackers to watch the new year. They also had to eat New Years Eve dinner and make dumplings. It was a day that all children looked forward to.
The five babies of the Qin family didnt need anyone to wake them up. They woke up two hours earlier than usual. No, it could be said that they were so excited that they didnt sleep much the entire night. They were already waiting for the sky to turn dark before dawn.
There were also people who got up even earlier. Before the first rays of the morning sun, there was already a long convoy of horses that had arrived at the Qin Viges entrance and were heading towards Mo Ruyues house with ease.
The sound of the rolling wheels alerted the vigers, and they all came out with torches to check the situation. When they saw that the convoy was even longer than thest three carriages, they werepletely stunned.
Oh my God, how many things are there in this? Why cant I see the end of it!
Thats right, it seems that it is going to the Qin familys first household. Could it be that it is really for Lady Qin?
Oh my God, I cant even imagine a truckload of things. So many truckloads, how much money would that be!
Everyone was discussing animatedly. Other than being envious, they could not think of anything else.
However, the more everyone envied Mo Ruyue, the more they wanted to see the Qin family make a fool of themselves. Unfortunately, Qin Shi was still in prison, Qin Xu was still missing.
Seeing so many carriages pass by, all the vigers couldnt hold it in any longer. One by one, they abandoned their own work and prepared to follow to see the show.
With so many gifts being sent to the vige, they were afraid that such a thing would not happen again in the future. Even if they were for others, it was good to be able to satisfy their eyes.
Although Mo Ruyue knew that there would be another wave of gifts today, she didnt expect it to be so big. Was this the extent of the noble families actions?
In fact, he could have folded them into gold notes and given them to her. For example, the way the person who left a bag of gold notes on the beam of the house would have been much simpler and cruder.
However, since the gift had already been delivered to her door, there was no reason to reject it. Mo Ruyue turned her head and nced at her own courtyard. Although it was not small, there was probably no more space to store things.
Two people alighted from the first carriage. One was the whitemander of the Bai manor, and the other was an unfamiliar face that Mo Ruyue had never seen before.
The two of them walked in front of Mo Ruyue and greeted her with a smile. Lady Qin, weve followed Masters instructions to send you thest new year gift.
White Commander, and this gentleman, thank you for your hard work. Mo Ruyue also smiled in response.
As the saying goes, dont hit a smiling person. Besides, they were here to give her a gift, so she couldnt be cold to them.
Lady Qin, this one is the steward of the Ouyang family. Master had previously instructed to prepare a generous gift for you. Its just that this one had to rush over from the Ouyang family, and the journey is really a bit far, so I was dyed until now.
The stranger was a very refined middle-aged man. Although the corners of his eyes and the tips of his brows had been engraved with the traces of time, one could still see the elegant demeanor of his youth.
This was a person who could make people feel good at first sight. However, to Mo Ruyue, it didnt matter even if he looked fierce. It was not good to judge a person by their appearance, not to mention that he had brought arge number of gifts.
Mr. Ouyang, youvee a long way. Youve worked hard. Please go in and rest first, then well talk slowly. Mo Ruyue said and wanted to let the two of them into the house.
Were not busy. In fact, my master had already instructed us before he came here. This time, the number of gifts sent is huge. Im afraid that Lady Qins family wont be able to put it all down, so they have specially prepared a list.
Lady Qin, please follow us to take stock. After confirming that there are no mistakes, the things will be brought back to the county. The masters have chosen a house in a very good location for you. These things will be ced in the house and specially taken care of.
Steward Ouyang smiled and rejected Mo Ruyues suggestion. He turned around and waved to the people behind him. Immediately, a person who looked like an attendant came over with a tray. On it was a thick list of records.
Just by looking at this endless carriage group, it was not difficult to guess how many gifts were piled up on it, so it was not surprising that there were two thick copies of the booklet.
Then Ill have to trouble the two of you. Lets start counting now.
Only now did Mo Ruyue understand the reason why these two hade so early. There were simply too many things, and who knew when they would finish counting them all.
Uncles, drink some hot tea to warm your body first. Youvee all the way here, and its been hard on you.
Qin Qingduo walked out of the kitchen with Qin Qinghao and Qin Qingwan. One of them was carrying a teapot, another was carrying a tray with two teacups, and thest was carrying a box of pastries.
Qin Qingyan and Qin Qinghong were each carrying a basket filled with clean porcin bowls. It seemed like they were going to send tea to the coachmen.
Thank you, little brother. Im really a little thirsty.
Steward Ouyangs smile did not falter, giving off a feeling of a spring breeze.
Chapter 316 - 316 Inventory Check Completed
316 Inventory Check Completed
After the two had finished drinking tea, Mo Ruyue exchanged a few more words. Seeing that the other coachmen had also drunk tea to warm themselves up, she said, Then lets start now. The earlier we finish counting, the earlier you can go back to report.
The whitemander and the Ouyangmander also nodded in agreement. They personally apanied her and began to count the gifts in the carriage.
This count stunned all the surrounding vigers. Waves of surprised cries came continuously, but by the time they reached the end, everyone was already numb to it and didnt even bother to make a sound.
There were so many good things that everyone was dazzled. At first, some people tried to estimate the value, but in the end, they found that it was not worth it at all.
Ten fingers were already not enough, even if he used ten more toes, it would still not be enough.
When the sun rose, they had only finished loading half of the carriages, and some vigers who were tired from standing had already gone home.
Lady Qin was undoubtedly rich, and the wealth they earned today was more than they could earn in ten or a hundred lifetimes.
It was infuriating topare people. If they continued to look, they would be envious and jealous. Everyone was afraid that their eyes would fall into the wealth and they would never be able to pull it out again. So, they could only hurry home so that they wouldnt be bothered.
When Mo Ruyue was halfway through the inventory, she asked Qin Qinghao to go to the kitchen to prepare some more food. Whether it was the housekeeper or the coachman, they had arrived at the Qin Vige so early, which meant that they had woken up even earlier.
Even if they had already eaten before they left, they should be hungry by now.
It just so happened that there were some cakes that Mo Ruyue had baked yesterday at home. A small portion of them were used to pay respects to the ancestors, and the rest were made for the babies.
Now that she had the rare time to cook for them, she naturally seized every opportunity to cook and satisfy their needs in various ways.
As a result, the two supervisors and the group of coachmen also benefited from it. When they took the first bite, their eyes were wide with surprise.
Not to mention that it was the first time the coachmen had eaten such a delicious pastry, even the two experienced butlers were surprised.
They could be considered to have followed their master everywhere and had seen a lot. What kind of food had they not tried? But the pastries made by Mo Ruyue had opened a new door for them to know about food.
It turns out that Lady Qins cooking skills are also so high. I dont think its any worse than your medical skills.
The whitemander said, full of praise.
In fact, he had long heard of Mo Ruyues cooking skills.
Their youngdy Bai Shijiao had such a tricky taste. No matter how delicious the food was, she would get tired of it after two or three times. However, she never got tired of Lady Qins nutritious meal. This was famous in the entire Bai family.
As for Miss Zhu Zhu, there was no need to mention her. She was a pampered child who grew up with gold and jade, and was only harder to serve than their own miss. However, after eating the nutritious meal made by Lady Qin, she also looked forward to it every day, and now she was very well-behaved.
Steward Ouyang also nodded his head slightly. Although he did not show it on his face, he was extremely shocked in his heart.
He rushed to the Bai manortest night. At that time, he also heard the rumors about his miss being addicted to eating Madam Qins nutritious meal, but he didnt care at that time.
He thought that it was just because she was tired of eating big fish and meat, so she changed it to some light porridge and side dishes to freshen up. However, after personally tasting it today, he realized that he was really too arrogant and hadmitted a big taboo that he should not havemitted.
If the two of you like it, Ill have Qinghao pack some more for you to take away when you leave.
They had made a lot of pastries at home, so Mo Ruyue was not stingy to share with the two.
Then Ill ept your invitation.
The whitemander was the first to agree. However, he didnt want to eat it himself. Instead, he wanted to bring it back for his masters to try.
Dont give the food to the twodies. They cant have sugar now. Itll dy the effect.
Mo Ruyues words had ruined the whitemanders n.
This, Lady Qin, you also know our familys youngdy. If she sees that she doesnt have a share of the things you give, her temper will not be good.
The whitemander smiled bitterly. This box of pastries was originally a gift, but now it seemed to be a hot potato.
Dont worry, whitemander. Ive already prepared everything. Theres also a portion for the youngdy of the Ouyang family. Their desserts are specially made. With this, you cant eat other peoples desserts.
Mo Ruyue would only continue to go to the Bai family after the winter food festival, so she had already prepared the prizes for the two weight loss girls during this period of time. She was waiting for the person who had given the gifts to the Bai family today to bring them back.
It turns out that Lady Qin has long prepared. This has made this one sigh in relief.
The whitemanders expression and tone became rxed. After understanding the temper of the young girl, Mo Ruyue could understand his feelings of relief at this moment.
Although there was only one more person, Mo Ruyue had also brought out desserts for the Bai family, and the amount was enough.
The smile on the whitemanders face never stopped as he happily received the box of pastries from Mo Ruyue and the babies. If it wasnt for the fact that Steward Ouyang had also tasted the pastry, he would never believe that the whitemander would be so happy just for a bite.
The entire inventory check didnt end until the end of the night. At this time, the sun had already tilted to the mountains in the west. In another four hours, the sky would bepletely dark.
The sound of firecrackers and childrensughter could be heard in the distance. The liveliness of the night had quietly arrived ahead of time.
The whitemander marked thest stroke on the list and said to Mo Ruyue with a smile, Lady Qin, we finally didnt let Master down. We have counted all the gifts with you. Heres the key to the new house, you can keep it well too.
He handed arge booklet and a bunch of keys to Mo Ruyue, then exined the use of each key in detail, and finally said to her, In that case, well take our leave first. We have to rush back before night falls and move everything into the house.
Mo Ruyue nodded. Then Ill have to trouble you, White Commander. Please convey my new years blessings to your master. Also, you must make sure the two youngdies keep their mouths shut. Dont waste all our efforts.
She also specifically reminded the two youngdies about the things they should pay attention to when losing weight. Although they didnt need to abstain from eating ording to Mo Ruyues treatment, they still had to pay attention to some things during the bottleneck period.
After the two managers bade Mo Ruyue farewell again, they brought the carriage back.
Enough. Now that weve seen themotion at other peoples houses, lets hurry back. We havent made the New Years Eve dinner yet. Itll be bad enough if the pot and stove are coldter.
Thats right. Theyre notcking in fortune and wealth during the new year. We dont have anything we want, so dont just look at them with envy.
Chapter 317 Upright
Chapter 317 Upright
"You guys say, since Lady Qin has earned so much money, she should be leaving soon, right? Our small mountain vige can''t hold her. Didn''t you see that they sent so many gifts that there''s no ce to put them? They even specially sent a house to put the gifts."
"Don''t just look at how much she has earned. Look at her abilities as well. She''s been awarded by the imperial court. The days of great profit are yet toe."
The words of the vigers'' discussion entered Mo Ruyue''s ears. Recently, her ears were so worn out by these words that calluses were about to form. It was a pity that her five senses were too sharp, and it was impossible to block them even if she wanted to.
However, Mo Ruyue had always been deaf to these insignificant words. Moreover, they didn''t dare to say these things in front of her, so she pretended not to hear them.
"Take Qinghao to Grandma Liu''s house to help with the New Year''s Eve dinner. Leave the house to Mother. When everything is done here, I''ll get Qinghong to call you."
Mo Ruyue called out to Qin Qingyan.
This had been discussed with the Liu couple before. Every family that had the means would prepare a reunion dinner on Chinese New Year''s Eve. Even if the Liu couple wanted to spend it with Mo Ruyue''s family, they wouldn''t leave their own cold pot and stove without the new year''s vor.
It was said that this wouldn''t bring good luck to theing year. Although Mo Ruyue didn''t really believe in these things, seeing that the people around her attached great importance to it, she followed the good advice.
"Alright, I''ll take Qinghao there first."
As Qin Qingyan spoke, he took the ingredients he had preparedst night and brought Qin Qinghao to Aunt Liu''s house.
Mo Ruyue was also ready to show off her skills today. She had already prepared the ingredients ording to the recipe of the Manchu Han Imperial Feast. Some of the dishes that required a long time to cook had already been prepared as early as two days ago. Today was just thest step.
As soon as she entered the kitchen, she turned to look at the Liu family''s residence and narrowed her eyes.
It seemed that the convoy today had really provoked a lot of people. They had already begun to get close to each other without caring about their face.
In the Liu family''s house, several vigers were holding tea and smiling at Aunt Liu. It looked like they hade in advance to congratte the new year, but not only was there no smile on Aunt "Aunt Liu, you also want to see everyone in our vige get along with each other, right? Now, only you and your husband are close to Lady Qin and can talk to her, so it shouldn''t be difficult to just Liu''s face, but there was also a slight frown.
"Madam Liu, you see, we''re all from the same vige. Isn''t it good for everyone to get closer to each other? Why are you so hesitant?"
These vigers were all old women. Obviously, they came to find Madam Liu to y the card of friendship from the same vige.
One of the women saw that Madam Liu didn''t speak for a long time and couldn''t help but smile and persuade her.
"That''s right, that''s right. After all, the five children lived in the vige for a period of time. We all felt sorry for them. Now that we see them living well, we are really happy for them."
"Aunt Liu, you also want to see everyone in our vige get along with each other, right? Now, only you and your husband are close to Lady Qin and can talk to her, so it shouldn''t be difficult to just mention it a little, right?"
"That''s right. We''re not asking you to do anything against your conscience. We''re just saying a few words about how we took care of the five babies back then. We''re already very grateful to you."
Everyone spoke one after another. Although they all said that they only needed to mention one sentence, their words carried a sense of both carrot and stick. They also deliberately mentioned the rtionship between Madam Liu and Mo Ruyue. Obviously, they were reminding her not to "eat all the food alone."
"You mean, you want me to help you remind Lady Qin that she owes you a favor?"
Madam Liu said it bluntly, making the faces of several vigers suddenly change after hearing it, and suddenly they were somewhat embarrassed.
"Aunt Liu, you can''t say it like that. We just saw that you and Lady Qin''s rtionship is close, and thought that since we are all from the same vige, it would be better to get closer to each other. Howe when these wordse out of your mouth, it sounds so bad?"
The smile on the woman''s face had already frozen. She wanted to fall out with him, but she didn''t dare to make their rtionship too stiff. In the end, her words still carried a hint ofint.
"It''s true that I have a good rtionship with Lady Qin, but what I said just now is not true? Although her personality is a little cold, she is very reasonable. If you treat her with your heart, how can she ignore you?"
Aunt Liu said and then smiled lightly: "Do you really think that such a method will work on her? Instead of thinking about how to y tricks, it''s better to think about how to exchange sincerity for sincerity, which is more realistic."
"Aunt Liu, are you afraid that if our rtionship with Lady Qin gets better, you won''t be able to get any benefits, or are you afraid that we''ll share your things?"
The other woman was even more impolite. The smile on her face just now hadpletely disappeared. She turned hostile faster than turning a page in a book.
After she finished speaking, there was really someone who wanted to nod and echo her, but after seeing Madam Liu''s eyes looking over, they immediately stopped their actions.
"Whatever you say. I''m not afraid of what you say."
Madam Liu was toozy to argue for herself now. In any case, whether she did it or not, these people would not change anything.
It was no wonder that Lady Qin wanted to leave this vige. It was not only because she had umted a certain amount of wealth and wanted to give the children a better education and living standard, but also because once she got entangled with these people, there would be no end.
"Grandma Liu, Qinghao and I are here to help you with the New Year''s Eve dinner.
Qin Qingyan''s voice suddenly came from outside the door. The women in the room were stunned, and their faces suddenly showed surprise.
"Oh, why are Qingyan and Qinghao here? Are you helping Aunt Liu with the new year''s dinner? You guys are so obedient!"
A woman quickly went out to greet him. As she spoke, she reached out to take the basket of ingredients from Qin Qingyan''s hands.
"Look at the good quality streaky pork and two fish inside. There are about seven to eight catties, right? It''s winter, it''s rare to eat fish even in the city. Look at Lady Qin, she just gave two away."
Qin Qingyan took a step back and blocked Qin Qinghao and the baskets in their hands behind him. He said politely, "Aunt, we''re just here to get the things. It''s not far from the kitchen. Are you here to help Grandma Liu with the New Year''s Eve dinner?"
Although the woman''s hand fell on empty air, the smile on her face did not decrease in the slightest, and her attitude was much better than when she faced Madam Liu.
"Qingyan, why aren''t you at home helping your mother with the New Year''s Eve dinner? Instead, you''vee to Aunt Liu''s ce. The rtionship between your two families is really good."
The woman asked again, trying to probe the two babies. She was trying to get close.
"Tonight, Grandpa Liu and Grandma Liu will be spending New Year''s Eve with our family. Mother said that we have to help Grandma Liu prepare the New Year''s Eve dinner before we go home together."
Qin Qingyan answered every question she asked, causing Qin Qinghao to turn his head to look at him.
Chapter 318 The New Year
Chapter 318 The New Year
They had heard everything that these people had said just now. All of them had ideas about their family and even wanted to make things difficult for Grandma Liu. Why did Big Brother tell them everything? This was not like his usual personality.
Aunt Liu was listening at the side and didn''t have any intention of interrupting.
Qin Qingyan was a child with his own ideas, and she believed that he must have his reasons for doing so.
After hearing Qin Qingyan''s words, everyone present revealed a look of envy and jealousy, but at the same time, they also had a trace of expectation.
If their rtionship with the Qin family got better in the future, would they be able to be like Madam Liu and get some good things from Madam Qin every three to five days?
"Aiyo, it''s really not bad. In our vige, your family is the first to have the most sumptuous New Year''s Eve dinner. Aunt Liu and her husband are really lucky! I just don''t know if we''ll have the fortune to enjoy the New Year''s celebration."
The aunt who had spoken the most directly just now walked forward and "flipped" the ingredients in the two baskets over and over again, wishing she could directly snatch the baskets over.
The meat was easy to get, but it was rare to get to eat a fish on a normal day, not to mention that there was a year-long festive event today.
"Aunt, you can ask my mother directly. I only brought my brother here to help Grandma Liu with her work. All the guests in our house were invited by Mother."
Qin Qingyan''s words had kicked the ball to Mo Ruyue''s side, but none of the women present dared to say this to her.
All they could do was smile awkwardly, not knowing how to continue the conversation.
"Do you all want to stay and help? Our time is tight. It''s best to have the reunion dinner at night so that we can set off the firecrackers."
Qin Qingyan looked like he wanted to keep them, but he was actually driving them away. When the otherdies heard this, their faces turned even uglier.
"Hehe, Qingyan, we just saw that Aunt Liu''s family only has two old people, and it''s quite lonely, so we came over to chat with her. If you have anything else to do, we''ll take our leave."
They had alsoe to beg Madam Liu with thick skin, but now that they had hit two rejections from her and Qin Qingyan, no matter how unwilling they were, they could only leave temporarily.
"Then, aunts, please go. Qinghao and I won''t see you out."
Although Qin Qingyan said that, he really stood still and had no intention of sending them off.
"Don''t send me off, don''t send me off. We all live in the same vige. There''s no need to send me off. Let''s hurry up and leave. We''ll be busy when we get home."
The few of them spoke in unison, but in the end, they still left resentfully.
"Qingyan, why are you here with Qinghao? Didn''t you say that Tang Tang was here?"
Madam Liu didn''t ask about how Qin Qingyan had told everything to those vige women. She was more concerned about why the people who hade had suddenly changed.
"Tang Tang is here. Those prostitutes in your room just now are even more unwilling to leave. They might even bring her back to our house."
Qin Qingyan couldn''t figure it out at first. His mother knew that he was not good at cooking. On the contrary, Tang Tang''s cooking skills were ranked behind his mother and Qinghao, so she should be the one to help. But now that he thought about it, he seemed to understand why his mother had made such an arrangement.
However, how did Mother know that such a thing would happen in Grandma Liu''s house? Could it be that she had super hearing and heard everything?
Qin Qingyan only thought about it for a moment before he quickly shook his head and got rid of this ridiculous thought.
Aunt Liu didn''t tell Mo Ruyue about this matter and Mo Ruyue didn''t take the initiative to ask.
By the time night hadpletely fallen, Mo Ruyue''s table was already filled with tes and bowls of all sizes. Dishes that looked, smelled, and tasted good were stacked on top of each other, dazzling people to the point where they didn''t know where to start.
Mo Ruyue had also specially prepared two kinds of wine for tonight. One was the white wine that she and the Liu couple drank together, and the other was fruit wine for the babies.
Although it was called fruit wine, it had actually reduced the alcohol content to the minimum after fermentation. It was just a new kind of fermented drink that tasted sour and sweet. Even the youngest Qin Qingwan could drink a small cup.
The Liu couple were allowed to sit on Mo Ruyue''s left and right. Uncle Liu sat on the right and Aunt Liu sat on the left.
The two of them were in the first and second guest seats. Clearly, Mo Ruyue was treating them as distinguished guests.
"Lady Qin, look at this. How can this be good? how can we sit here?" Aunt Liu said, a little embarrassed.
Although it wasn''t the first time the two of them had a meal with Mo Ruyue''s family, it was still the first time that they had a formal and important festival like the Spring Festival, and the meaning it represented was different.
"Why can''t you sit here?"
Mo Ruyueughed and asked in return. She was the first to raise his ss and say, "This year, Uncle Liu and Aunt Liu have helped me a lot to take care of the family and the babies. It''s only right for me to invite the two of you to sit at the head of the table."
"I''ll first offer you a cup of wine to express my respect."
"Lady Qin, you''re too polite. We''re neighbors, so we should take care of each other. Besides, we''ve also received a lot of care from you, so I don''t know how to thank you."
The Liu couple also raised their sses and replied with a smile. Then, the three of them drank the wine in one gulp.
"Come,e,e. Let''s eat. It''s the new year today, so we must all be happy. Next year will also be a healthy, happy, and peaceful year."
Mo Ruyue raised her chopsticks and called for everyone to start eating. This sumptuous reunion dinner officially kicked off.
After a few sses of wine, the Liu couple hadpletely integrated into the atmosphere of the family and no longer appeared so restrained.
The bowls in front of them were always full. The few babies were using the male chopsticks to serve them food, taking care of them even more carefully than Mo Ruyue.
"Uncle Liu, Aunt Liu, I''m sincere about what I''ve mentioned to you before. The babies are also looking forward to your agreement, so I hope that you can consider it carefully.
Mo Ruyue picked up the wine pot again and filled the Liu couple''s sses with wine. She also filled her own ss.
Even though she hadn''t even finished a single pot of wine, she was already feeling slightly tipsy. It was truly somewhat inconceivable.
"Lady Qin, for the future of the babies, you will definitely leave this small mountain vige. But the two of us are already very old. If we go with you, we will only be able to help less and less. I''m afraid we will have to trouble you in the future."
When Aunt Liu spoke, her eyes could not help but nce at Uncle Liu. Her expression was a little sad. It seemed that the couple had discussed it, but the conclusion they reached might not be sincere.
"If you two say so, then I won''t dare to trouble you with anything in the future. Aren''t we a family now? Why are you still talking like this?"
As Mo Ruyue spoke, she secretly gave her babies a look.
Chapter 319 - 319: New Year’s Eve Dinner
Chapter 319: New Years Eve Dinner
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Tang Tang was the first one to get down from her chair. She walked to Aunt Lius side and put her little hand on her arm. She blinked her eyes and asked her pitifully, Grandma Liu, wont you miss me if you dont see Tang Tang in the future?
Aunt Liu was stunned. Before she could answer, Tang Tang had already leaned forward and hugged her arm, But Tang Tang will miss Grandma Liu. So will my brothers. They will miss Grandpa Liu.
Her soft and sweet voice made Aunt Lius heart melt. She and Uncle Liu had long treated MO Ruyue and the five babies as a family. How could they bear not to see them again?
Grandpa Liu, Grandma Liu, when youre older, well be as filial to you as we are to our mothers. Weve never thought of you two as trouble. Youve seen for yourself how our own aunt and uncle are. They cant catch up to you two even if they tried to tter you.
San Baos words were extremely straightforward, but they were sincere and without any lies.
Yes, when Mother went to treat patients and save lives, it was Grandpa and Grandma who took care of us, sending us to and from school in the morning and evening. If we were to calcte so clearly, how much trouble have we caused you two?
Er Bao also joined in the persuasion.
San Bao didnt say much, but he had already picked up the public chopsticks and started to serve the Liu couple food.
As for Da Bao, he directly filled their sses with wine, then casually poured some white wine into his own.
Grandpa Liu, Grandma Liu, we really hope that you two cane with us. Although the old people like to return to their roots, its only called home when the whole family is together, isnt it?
Seeing that the five children took turns to speak, the Liu couple was so confused that they could only smile, MO Ruyue knew that this matter was considered a sess and nodding was only a matter of time.
Seeing that everyone had worked hard, she didnt mind that Da Bao had taken the opportunity to secretly drink white wine.
It was good to be drunk, but who would know how ufortable it was after sobering up?
The sound of firecrackers in the vige rose and fell, immediately attracting the attention of the babies.
In order to have a lively night, MO Ruyue had purchased arge number of fireworks in the county. However, for safety reasons, they were scattered in safer ces instead of at home.
She saw that the babies minds were no longer on the dining table, so she said, Da Bao, take your siblings out to y with firecrackers. Remember, dont take too many at once. Dont bring incense or fire with you. Be careful.
She felt that she had to talk about all aspects, but she was afraid that she would be too long-winded.
I know, Mother. Youve already reminded me repeatedly before, so Ill take them out to y.
Although Da Bao had always been very calm and steady, he could not help but reveal a childlike innocence that should belong to someone his age at this time.
MO Ruyue couldnt help butugh. She knew that they had been looking forward to this day for too long, so she waved her hand and let them y freely.
Oh, oh, lets set off some firecrackers!
The babies immediately put down their chopsticks in excitement and swarmed out.
After the New Years Eve dinner, the eve of the new year had just begun.
The babies who had gone out to set off firecrackers for a while had all returned. It was unknown how much perseverance they had used to ovee their yful nature. They were ready to help MO Ruyue clean up the dining table and then make arrangements for the dumplings.
Go, go, go, you guys go ahead and y. No matter how hot your hats and scarves are, you cant take them off, do you hear me?
MO Ruyue didnt say a word and chased them out. The new year was a time for the children to y to their hearts content. She could handle this work alone.
Thats right. Were still here. We dont need you guys. Be careful not to get hurt. Have fun. Aunt Liu also said with a smile.
They would only return home after the new year, so they would be cleaning up the kitchen and making dumplings with MO Ruyue.
Then lets go and y!
San Bao cheered and took the lead to rush out again. The other babies followed closely behind. This time, they didnt hesitate at all.
Uncle Liu, Aunt Liu, you guys rest first. Ill handle this.
MO Ruyue thought that if it werent for these two, she would have put all the tes into her space and cleaned them up in a while without wasting any time.
Sigh, I already said that were family. Why are you being so distant? Its faster if we do it together.
Aunt Lius words extinguished MO Ruyues thoughts of trying to persuade her.
Indeed, on one hand, she said that they were a family, but on the other hand, she was acting like an outsider. It was really a bit inconsistent with her words. Alright then, lets work together. Well make dumplings togetherter. Although MO Ruyue did not show it, she was very excited in her heart.
It was her first time celebrating the new year. In the past, she would either be on a mission or on the road to a mission. Other peoples lively reunions had nothing to do with her.
The three of them cleaned up the table together. After a short break, they began to chop the vegetables and meat to make the fillings. They chatted while making dumplings.
The sound of firecrackers outside rose and fell, but it still could not cover the children running around andughing from time to time.
The air was filled with the familiar smell of gunpowder. However, to MO Ruyue, it was no longer the cold aura that symbolized death, but a warm smell that was full of vitality and happiness.
No matter what the real reason she came to this world was, she was willing to do her best to protect the happiness she felt now.
For tonights dumplings, there was a total of seven kinds of stuffing, three meat and three vegetable fillings, and one kind of pure seafood dumpling. The ingredients were naturally the new years gift from the Bai family.
At the same time, there were also some special ingredients that were prepared under the guidance of Aunt Liu.
Copper coins, peanuts, candy, red dates, and so many wagers? I wonder what I can eatter.
As MO Ruyue wrapped the dumplings, she randomly added ingredients into the filling.
Copper coins are naturally the best, as it means that well be able to make a lot of money in theing year. As for the peanuts and candies, theyre all for sweet-talking use.
Aunt Liu said as she ced the dumplings in her hands on the curtain.
The three of them made dumplings in different styles, and it was obvious who made them at a nce.
Aunt Lius dumplings were chubby, small but full.
Uncle Lius dumplings were round, like gold ingots. They were not the usual dumplings.
MO Ruyues dumplings were thin. There was obviously a lot of stuffing in it, but it still looked much slimmer.
Feeding them made the babies eat more happily. MO Ruyue even specially mixed carrot juice, spinach juice, pumpkin juice, and purple sweet potato juice into flour to make colorful dough.
Ive already memorized which dumpling has a copper coin in it, so Ill be able to eat it right away. Isnt this considered cheating? MO Ruyue casually asked.
Thanks to her photographic memory, even if she were to mess up all the dumplings on the curtain a few times, she would still be able to urately find the dumplings with copper coins..
Chapter 320 - 320: The Festive Ambiance
Chapter 320: The Festive Ambiance
Trantor:?Dragon Boat Trantion??Editor:?Dragon Boat Trantion
Lady Qin, you can pretend to forget. The new years meal is supposed to have a festive atmosphere, otherwise it would be boring.
Aunt Liu couldnt help but say, and even Uncle Liu also smiled slightly.
Mother, someone in the vige ran to the vige entrance to wait for the bell to ring. Can we go and see?
The three of them were making dumplings and talking in the house when San Bao and Tang Tang suddenly ran back holding hands. They asked Mo Ruyue excitedly as soon as they entered the door.
Ring the bell?
Mo Ruyue knew that in her previous life, during Chinese New Year, there would be a live broadcast of arge-scale party throughout the country. At 12 oclock, the clock would be struck. She didnt expect that after transmigrating to this world, even a small mountain vige would have such a ritual.
Originally, our vige didnt ring the bell. Everyone would wait for the first day of the new year to go to the temple ten miles away to burn the first incense. Later on, the previous vige chief said that those big cities would arrange bell-striking ceremonies on New Years Eve, so we can also join in the fun. After that, there was this rule.
Aunt Liu also exined to MO Ruyue the reason for striking the bell.
So thats how it is. Since its for the sake of liveliness and also to pray for blessings, then lets go. But be careful, and dont bring firecrackers with you. Come back quickly to eat dumplings after the bell rings. This is also very important.
MO Ruyue immediately agreed to the two babies request, and then the two of them cheered and rushed over.
Alright, dont pounce on me. Be careful not to get flour all over your body again!
MO Ruyue didnt ept the babies enthusiasm this time and directly reached out to stop the two of them. She then chased them away to y before continuing to make dumplings.
Lady Qin, its almost time. You should apany the babies and wait for the bell to ring. Leave this to me and Old Liu. We wont dy the cooking of the dumplings.
Aunt Liu suggested to MO Ruyue when it was almost time.
Strictly speaking, although MO Ruyue had married into the Qin family for a long time, this was the first time she had officially spent the new year with the babies. She should not be waiting for them at home, but should be weing the new year with them.
MO Ruyue originally wanted to decline, but after Aunt Lius persuasion, she finally changed her mind.
She immediately took off her apron and went to wash her hands. She casually took a cloak and draped it over her body. She said to Aunt Liu, Then Ill have to trouble Uncle Liu and Aunt Liu. Ill go over now.
Perhaps she had been waiting for this sentence for a long time, which was why she was so eager to leave, even full of joy.
The Liu couple looked at MO Ruyues back as she left, and the wrinkles on their faces stretched out with a smile.
Master, do you think we should go with Lady Qin? Aunt Liu could not help but ask Uncle Liu.
Perhaps, its not a bad idea for us to follow them.
When the bronze bell at the Qin Vige entrance rang, a bloody massacre quietly began.
The restaurant that should have been brightly lit and bustling with people was now pitch ck.
lne aoor or tne restaurant was wide open, ana no one was gomg In or out. lne whole building was quiet, as if it was a different world from the hustle and bustle outside.
Drip, drip, drip
The sound of water dripping and the gurgling of water could be heard.
A man was staring at the closed door. One of his hands was hanging by his side, and the other was on the desk in front of him. His fingers were stiff from the force, and the ce where they were pressed against the desk was white and bleeding. He even pressed deep cracks on the hard solid wood desk.
The smell of blood slowly spread, and the smell became stronger and stronger. The mans face became uglier and uglier.
So many people couldnt stop him, but he still ended up here?
He mumbled to himself as a bitter smile appeared in his eyes.
With a loud bang, a brilliant firework exploded in the night sky, followed by another burst of fireworks, illuminating the dark night sky as if it were daytime.
The man suddenly turned to look out the window, his pupils reflecting the fireworks outside, and sighed slightly.
The door opened quietly. A man in ck was standing at the door. He seemed to be soaked in something, and the color of his clothes was particrly dark.
He walked in slowly, step by step, but the man sitting behind the desk seemed to be unaware of it, still turning his head and looking out the window in a daze.
This seat was originally prepared for you.
He suddenly opened his mouth, as if he was talking to himself.
When you first came to this building, I knew that if I didnt give you this seat, I wouldnt be able to keep you. Perhaps they know me too well, so theyve been eyeing you since long ago.
Its not that I didnt know, but I didnt do anything. Instead, I allowed them to continue doing what they wanted. I also wanted to see if the person I had my eyes on was worthy of this position.
But what I didnt expect was that you didnt care about anything at all. So, even if I gave you the position directly, you would have just abandoned it like an old shoe.
He said a long sentence, but the man who walked in did not seem to hear it. His face was expressionless, as if those words were like a gust of wind blowing past his ear, leaving no trace at all.
Ah Ying, other than this, Ive never treated you badly. You didnt take their provocation to heart at all, so why did you suddenlye to our door and destroy everything?
The man behind the desk turned his head again and stared at the man who had already walked to the desk.
The fireworks outside the window were getting more and more intense, reflecting his face. His cold and determined face was stained with blood, like a shura who had stepped into the human world from purgatory. Only his pair of eyes, which were as bright as the cold stars, reflected the fireworks in the sky, but they still could not be stained with a trace of warmth.
He still didnt say anything, but his silence gave the man behind the desk an answer.
You actually have a weakness?
The mans eyes widened, and heughed out loud.
I should have known. If I hadnt touched your bottom line, why would you have killed all the people you saw as ants and destroyed everything so thoroughly to prevent a resurgence?
Its a pity that I didnt manage to grasp your weak spot.
Before he could finish his sentence, his eyes suddenly popped out. The light in his eyes immediately dimmed and was covered with a thickyer of death.
You talk too much.
The man called Ah Ying finally responded, but it was only a short and cold four words.
Then, a cold light shed, and a string of blood beads fell into the scabbard at his waist.
He didnt read the dead man behind the desk but went straight to the bookshelf behind him.
There was a small white jade Buddha statue on the shelf. It seemed to have been touched many times, and the jade was particrly warm and delicate.
Ah Ying walked forward and turned the white jade Buddha. The bookshelf immediately split into two and slid silently to the sides. A two-foot groove was immediately revealed on the wall behind.
There was no gold, silver, or jewelry in it, only some books and ount books. There was only a small red sandalwood box at the top..
Chapter 321 - 321: On Fire
Chapter 321: On Fire
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
He opened a bag on his back. There was also a wooden box inside, but it was dozens of times bigger than the small box.
Ying put all the books and ount books into the wooden box, but kept the small red sandalwood box in his arms.
After doing all this, he pushed the candle on the table over and watched as the burning me gradually spread and swallowed the entire desk.
The strong smell of blood in the room couldnt cover up the smell of sulfur. As long as the fire spread to the ce where the gunpowder was scattered, the restaurant filled with the smell of death would explode into the most brilliant and enthusiastic fireworks of the night.
Ah Ying looked around the room again, but he did not look at the body behind the desk. Then, he jumped out of the window, glided like a ROC with its wings spread, and disappeared into the night.
Hey, look, why is the sky over there red?
The bell at midnight had already rung, and the cheering crowd had begun to disperse. At this time, someone found that the sky in the south of the city had turned red.
Following the direction of his finger, some people noticed thick smoke rising. It didnt look like fireworks, but more like a fire somewhere.
11 cant De water, rigntf Tne smell 01 smoKe IS so strong!
Its running out of water. Quickly call for help!
More and more people realized that something was wrong. The joy of the celebration was suddenly washed away by the tense atmosphere. Everyone shouted and ran, wanting to quickly put out the fire.
Every year, there would be incidents of fireworks and water leakage. By right, such arge-scale fire should have already rmed the governments fire brigade, but no one from the fire brigade appeared even after the people shouted for a long time.
Just as themoners took the buckets and basins and were ready to put out the fire, they suddenly heard a loud boom. The earth seemed to be shaking. This was not the end. There were continuous explosions and flying pieces of wood and gravel. Some of themoners who were already very close were hit and fell to the ground, bleeding.
Suddenly, screams and wails filled the air. The rest of the people were busy avoiding the flying gravel and dragging the injured away.
It was not until the explosion ended that someone dared toe and treat the wounded. As for the building that had been blown up, it had long been blown to pieces, leaving only some remnants of the wooden frame that was still burning.
The bloody case on the new years night was not an isted case. In the next few days, simr cases happened in several cities, and the victims were all branches of the same restaurant. For a time, rumors about who the restaurant had offended were rampant.
Because there were always explosions and fire, and countless burnt bones were found in the remains of the building, the bloody horror of this serial case diluted the happy and peaceful atmosphere of the new year. The people in the city where the case happened and the nearby cities were all in a panic, afraid that such bad luck would befall them.
It was strange to say that these explosions would affect some innocent people without exception. Whether they were injured or their homes were destroyed, they all received silver notes of different denominations in the next few days.
It was like thepensation given by the vicious murderer, and the amount ofpensation for each family was at least a dozen or a few dozen taels, and at most a hundred taels. It was also different ording to the situation of each family.
For a moment, no one knew whether the murderer was crazy or humane.
The local authorities were the most troubled. They couldnt find any useful clues from the scene of the case, and they didnt even have a direction to start the investigation. They put up a huge reward for clues and insiders before mysteriously disappearing. No one dared to take the initiative toe to them and provide clues. The investigation of the case was like a y ox entering the sea. It waspletely in a deadlock.
MO Ruyue only found out about the rumors of this murder case after she returned to the Bai manor to continue her treatment. However, on the morning of the first day of the new year, when she still didnt know anything about it, she went into the mountains to visit her old friends ording to her n.
Da Bao, if anyonees to visit us for the new year, please take care of them. Well serve them tea and snacks. Theres no need to distinguish between close and distant rtives.
MO Ruyue warned Da Bao before she left.
I know, Mother. You must be careful when you enter the mountain. Come back early.
Da Bao was now used to MO Ruyues frequent visits to the mountains, and she did note back with prey and herbs every time. Obviously, she had another purpose in the mountains.
However, he would not ask for a reason now. He would only remind her and wait for her toe back.
After what happened at Aunt Lius housest night, MO Ruyue was nowpletely at ease with Da Baos ability to deal with the ways of the world. He would definitely entertain the vigers who woulde to visit him for the new year.
So after being intimate with the rest of the babies, MO Ruyue turned around and went straight to the back mountain.
Ever since the wolf pack was attacked, they hadpletely abandoned the cave they used to live in and moved to the valley of treasures.
After MO Ruyue entered the mountain, she went straight to the valley of treasures. About a hundred meters away from the valley, she detected the existence of the sentinel wolves.
She stopped and turned to look at the bushes beside her. Sure enough, she saw two giant wolves with their heads lowered, their tails wagging slightly, and whimpersing out of their throats.
Hey, Im happy to see you guys too.
MO Ruyue bent down and opened her arms to wee the two giant wolves, affectionately greeting them.
One of the giant wolves bit MO Ruyues sleeve and dragged her in the direction of the valley of treasures, as if it couldnt wait for her to go to the valley as a guest.
Ever since she found out that the giant wolves seemed to be closer to the man in ck, it would be a lie to say that she wasnt disappointed. But now, it seemed that the giant wolves still trusted and were close to her, which made her feel a little relieved.
Alright, Ill go over by myself. You guys continue to keep watch.
MO Ruyue patted the head of the giant wolf that was biting her sleeve, then continued to walk towards the valley of treasures.
Along the way, there were two hidden sentries. Every time she passed by one, a sentry wolf would drag her in the direction of the valley, as if afraid that she would leave. MO Ruyue keenly sensed that something was wrong.
This didnt seem like a simple wee to her visit. There seemed to be something else.
She immediately quickened her pace and entered the valley. This time, the ck wolf king came out to wee her in person. Alright, what happened?
MO Ruyue directly asked the ck wolf king.
The ck wolf king licked the back of her hand, then turned around and walked into the depths of the valley.
She and the ck wolf king walked through the entire valley together and came to the opposite cliff.
Previously, MO Ruyue had walked around the entire valley to pick herbs. She knew that this was a crater simr to a meteorite impact. The entire valley only had one entrance.
However, under the ck wolf kings lead, MO Ruvue suddenlv found another triangr hole that looked like an entrance.
She squinted at the entrance, then suddenly turned her head and looked behind her. She stretched out her hand andpared it to the entrance on the opposite side, as if she was measuring something..
Chapter 322 - 322: The Mirror Image of the Valley of Treasures
Chapter 322: The Mirror Image of the Valley of Treasures
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
No way. Could it be that this hole was really made by something?
She mumbled, finding her discovery unbelievable.
The two caves, which had the same shape, size, and height, were in a straight line, as if they had been pierced by a huge object.
What was even more incredible was that she had been to this ce more than once, but this was the first time she had seen the cave in front of her. Could there be some kind of barrier at the entrance of the cave that would only appear at a certain time every year?
You just want me to look at this cave?
MO Ruyue turned his head and asked the ck wolf king who was following him.
Wuwuwu Awooo
The ck wolf king nodded at her, as if it wanted to tell her something.
Unfortunately, the human and wolf did not understand each othersnguage. Even if she heard it, she could not understand what it was saying.
Ah, if only I had a beastnguage trantor. I wonder if the tool room in the realm can make it.
MO Ruyue sighed again. However, since the ck wolf king had brought her to this ce, it was likely that he didnt just want her to take a look outside. It was even more likely that he wanted her to go in and take a look.
She tried to take two steps forward, but the ck wolf king did not make any move to stop her. Instead, it kept staring at her.
Is there a time limit? I wont be locked inside, will I? She turned around and asked with uncertainty.
If it werent for her babies, she would have gone in without hesitation to see what was going on, but now she had too many things to worry about, so she was less curious.
Aowu, aowu
The ck wolf kings four limbs lightly stomped on the ground, as if urging MO Ruyue to hurry in.
Alright, you wont harm me. Whats inside? Let me go in and see.
MO Ruyue said softly. A shlight appeared in her hand, and she immediately walked toward the hole.
The depth of this cave was much deeper than the one at the entrance. At the entrance, they could still see the light outside the cave, but this one waspletely dark, without even a faint light.
MO Ruyues cold light shlight had a very long range and her vision was very good. Even so, she still didnt see any signs of an end.
She turned her head to look at the way she hade and saw the wolf king standing proudly at the entrance of the cave, as if waiting for her return.
Since she didnt know if there was a time limit for this hole to appear, MO Ruyue turned around and walked faster inside.
The tunnel was very damp, and the sound of water dripping could be heard all the way. He could even step on some puddles of water, which was almost impossible in the weather where water would turn to ice.
MO Ruyue had been carefully observing the surrounding environment. The deeper they went, the quieter the surroundings seemed to be. There was not even the sound of water dripping.
In her memory, she had already walked more than a hundred meters, but the tunnel still had no end, and there were no forks. It was as if it would just continue on.
What is it that the ck wolf king wants me to see so seriously? Theres actually an illusion at the entrance, so it shouldnt be an ordinary thing. At least, the existence of this pack of wolves is not ordinary.
She mumbled to herself. Her voice was reflected by the rock wall and echoed in the tunnel, as if someone was whispering in her ear.
Although the tunnel wasrge enough for a person to walk upright, the triangr structure caused the rock walls on both sides to pincer attack people and extend into the distance, making it look cramped and shrinking.
It was only because MO Ruyue was skilled and bold that she didnt have problems like ustrophobia. She didnt feel any difort even after walking for so long.
After she had walked forward for the time it took to finish a cup of tea, the cold light of the shlight that had an extremely long endurance suddenly went out.
The tunnel suddenly turned pitch ck. The sudden loss of light made MO Ruyue temporarily blind, but it was only for a moment. She immediately discovered that the rock walls of the tunnel had changed.
The tunnel looked like a giant rock that had been pierced through. The walls on both sides were smooth, and there was not even a single protruding rock. However, the moment she lost her vision, the walls on both sides turned into a rockyer mixed with soil and stone, and even some unknown nt roots and small insects.
It was as if she had been teleported to another tunnel. When she looked back, the light at the entrance of the cave and the silhouette of the wolf king had disappeared inexplicably.
Both ends were pitch-ck, and the corridor stretched endlessly. If it wasnt for the fact that MO Ruyue didnt rely on her sight to determine the direction, this nce would have easily confused the two directions.
She had not noticed the flow of air when she was walking in the tunnel. Although it was damp, there was still a musty smell. Now, she could vaguely feel the wind blowing from the front, and the musty smell seemed to have disappeared.
MO Ruyue did not seem to be flustered by this change. She just thought of an article called the peach blossom origins. If she also encountered such a situation, and when she walked out, she found that decades or even hundreds of years had passed, and everything had changed, it would be hard for her to pnt
However, she couldnt stay in the same ce forever, so she continued to move forward in her original direction.
This time, she didnt go far before a light spot appeared in front of her. As she continued forward, the light spot grew bigger and bigger. It was obvious that she had reached the exit on the other side.
MO Ruyue walked out of the cave and immediately frowned.
What appeared in front of her was actually another valley of treasures!
Other than the fact that the ck wolf king was not waiting outside, the surrounding grass and trees were exactly the same as when she entered the cave.
What was going on?
MO Ruyue had thought of many possibilities, but she had missed this one.
However, after her reincarnation, she could quickly calm down when faced with such a situation again. She adjusted her mentality to deal with what was going to happen next.
She casually picked a herb beside her and found that this herb seemed to be older than the one on the other side of the tunnel.
Could it be that she was really lost in the tunnel, and it had been a long time since she was in that time?
At the thought of her babies suddenly finding out that she had gone missing and had never appeared again, would they think that they had been abandoned?
In the days that she was gone, what kind of life did they live? did they go from anticipation to disappointment in her, and finally walk the old road of bing the viin in endless hatred?
The more she thought about it, the more shocked she became, and her palms started to sweat.
MO Ruyue quickly walked towards the entrance on the other end. Whether it was a guess or a truth, she had to go and confirm it with her own eyes.
However, when she was halfway there, she found that something was wrong. The rock wall where there should have been an exit was actually smooth, without even a narrow crack.
This was a mirror image of the valley of treasures, but it was not exactly the same as the one outside.
The giant tree that the wolf king often lived on was still there, but it was no longer a ginkgo tree that was hundreds of years old. Instead, it was an even older maple tree..
Chapter 323 - 323: Small Beeswax Ball
Chapter 323: Small Beeswax Ball
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion????? Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The huge crown of the tree was like a canopy, covering an area of nearly a hundred meters. The trunk alone was as thick as five people hugging it.
A fiery red maple leaf, as red as blood, was pressing down on the ground, even reflecting a trace of blood on the herbs on the ground.
Under the tree sat a man in a white robe. His eyebrows were like his hair, hanging down and dragging on the ground.
His hair had turnedpletely white, and even his eyebrows and beard were mixed with his clothes. If it werent for the outline of his jaw, it would be difficult to tell if he was a human or a beast with long hair.
That persons eyes were already covered by his drooping eyebrows, but his skin was still very stic. Although MO Ruyue couldnt hear his breathing and heartbeat, she felt that he was still alive, but he had fallen into a state of suspended animation like a turtle.
On the ground in front of him, there was a tortoise shell and a few beast bones. They seemed to be tools for divination.
MO Ruyue was attracted by the pattern of the tortoise shell bones and couldnt help but take a few more nces.
She believed that when she came to this ce, every scene she saw should
have a deep meaning, so even if she couldnt understand the secret for the
time being, she would firmly engrave it in her mind and slowly search for the
answer in the future.
After remembering the pattern, MO Ruyue took out a bottle of homemade fruit wine and a few tes of cakes she baked herself from the space and ced them in front of the person sitting cross-legged.
She didnt know who he was, but he must have been here alone for a long time.
Although the mortal world was noisy, it was also lively. Since they were fated, he would show his sincerity.
MO Ruyue didnt linger around the person who was sitting cross-legged for long. After cing the wine and pastries on the table, he continued to check.
There was a small golden grass under the huge rock that the wolf king had been lying on. It looked like it had been carved out of a whole piece of gold.
There were also a few vines that looked like Boston ivy surrounding it. The colorful vines reminded her of the most important saying in survival in the wild: the brighter the color, the more poisonous it was.
It was obvious that the vine was protecting the grass. Even if the vine suddenly moved in the next second, MO Ruyue wouldnt be surprised.
It was said that one couldnt return empty-handed after entering a valley of treasures. Although MO Ruyue wasnt a person who would pluck feathers from a goose when it passed, there was no reason for her to leave the treasure behind.
That golden grass was the only treasure that she could identify. There might be something even more precious and rare, but she couldnt identify it. She would just take it as if she didnt have the fortune and that she shouldnt take it.
However, in order to get the golden grass, she had to get through the five-colored vine first. MO Ruyues reaction speed was fast enough, but she didnt want to get hit for nothing. Who knew what kind of poison she would be poisoned with?
To be safe, she went into her interspace and changed into a new set of clothes. She put on ayer of protective clothing that had excellent sticity. The material of the clothing was specially made, and even if she used aser knife to cut it, it would be very troublesome. So, if she was hit by the vine, it could act as a buffer.
After changing her clothes, MO Ruyue took out a jade box.
Some herbs with peculiar medicinal properties must be stored in a jade box after they were picked so that their medicinal properties would not lose their effectiveness. This time, she had also made the same preparation. After all, it was normal for magical herbs to have some special personalities.
Alright, lets see how I can get you.
As MO Ruyue spoke, she had already taken out two specially made metal poles. They were used to push away the vines and at the same time, they could be used to test the situation.
She stretched the metal rod forward, and the vines that had been surrounding the golden grass moved.
Ahaha, as expected.
She whistled and immediately saw the vines dancing wildly, enveloping the golden grass tightly.
MO Ruyue subconsciously wanted to reach into her clothes and take out a porcin bottle. She had just raised her hand when she put it down again.
The bottle contained a powerful weedicide, which would be effective against such vines, but it was equivalent to hitting the owners watchdog with a dog beating stick, which was too offensive.
In this short moment of hesitation, the two metal rods were already scarred. They were left with countless deep scratches by the thorns on the vines, and they were constantly making teeth-numbing scraping sounds.
This made MO Ruyue very d that she had the foresight to change into the protective suit in advance. Even the special metal pole had been scratched to this extent. It was easy to imagine what would happen if a human body were to touch it.
Not being able to use a strong weedizer meant that she might have to get close to subdue the vines. MO Ruyue was thinking that if she used heavy metal weapons to suppress it or limit the range of movement of the vines to a minimum, it should be possible.
Just as she turned her head, she suddenly realized that the person sitting cross-legged behind her had changed his posture.
MO Ruyue remembered very clearly that his hands had been on his knees before, but now his hands were turned over with his palms facing up. There was also a small round ball in his left palm.
The small ball seemed to be made of wax, and it also emitted a strange fragrance.
She had a very strange feeling that the small ball was what she needed, a tool to subdue the vines.
This is for me, right? Then Ill take it.
MO Ruyue walked forward and confirmed once again that the person sitting cross-legged still didnt have any breathing, heartbeat, or pulse, but the change in his posture and the thing in his hand were not illusions.
Therefore, she took the small ball away after she greeted him.
That thing was indeed made of beeswax. Even though there was ayer of artificial skin as thin as cicadas wings on his hand, MO Ruyue could still feel it.
She walked forward with the ball in her hand, and at the same time, she was on guard against the vines that might suddenly attack her. Her whole body was like a bow on a string, ready to shoot out at any time
Perhaps it was the body temperature of a human that softened the beeswax, but the fragrance emitted by the small ball became more intense. The vines that were originally waving fiercely suddenly slowed down. As MO Ruyue got closer, some of the smaller vines had already fallen to the ground.
Its indeed useful. This is great. It saves me a lot of trouble.
She said with a smile. She had already stepped over the circle of vines and came to the side of the golden grass.
The next step was to use some jade tools to pick the grass. A hoe was used to loosen the soil beside it, a rake was used to remove the extra soil and stones, and finally, a shovel was used to carefully transfer the grass into the jade box.
After doing all this, mo Ruhan carried the jade box to the white-robed mans side. Just as he was about to put the beeswax ball back into his palm, he found that his hands had returned to their original state.
Does this mean that youre giving this to me as well?
MO Ruyue shook the small beeswax ball in her hand. Although she knew that no one would answer her question, she guessed that it would be like this.
Therefore, she took out a small bottle that could be sealed and put the beeswax ball in it. After doing all this, she was ready to go home..
Chapter 324 - 324: Hanshi Festival
Chapter 324: Hanshi Festival
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
There didnt seem to be any special treasures in the mirror valley of treasures, but any of the herbs were worth a fortune.
MO Ruyue had already nted many of these herbs in her space, so she didnt care about the soft gold.
Alright, its time for me to leave. Thank you for your gift. I hope youre doing well here.
She said goodbye to the man in the white robe and walked back to the entrance of the cave without looking back.
Behind her, the originally quiet and unmoving maple leaves suddenly moved without any wind, as if responding to her farewell.
After entering the cave, MO Ruyue walked forward at a faster speed than when she came. This time, there was no more abnormal situation. When she entered the cave, the rock wall was smooth and without a trace. She could also see the light at the end of the cave from a distance.
This section of the road was quicklypleted. When MO Ruyue walked out, she saw the ck wolf king sitting quietly outside.
She turned around and saw that the hole that she had juste out of had disappeared.
So there are still some conditions for it to be disyed.
MO Ruyue turned to look at the ck wolf king that had alreadye to her side and gently patted its head. Is that your master or your ancestors master?
Anyway, thank you for your new years gift.
The third day of the new year, the Cold Food Festival officially began.
In the next few days, every household was not allowed to turn on the stove, and they could only eat the cooked wheaten food.
It didnt feel good to eat cold food in the winter. At this time, the cakes and desserts baked by MO Ruyue were particrly popr.
She had also been prepared for the situation of unbnced nutrition if she only ate noodles, so she had added a lot of auxiliary ingredients when baking.
For example, all kinds of dried fruits, juiced vegetables, and fried eggs before re-processing them. As for meat, it could be ground into mince and added to the desserts.
The noodles she made were mostly used as decorations to look good in the house. Of course, in Jine with the principle of not wasting food, MO Ruyue brought the extra noodles with her when she entered the city and was prepared to distribute them to the beggars in the city.
It wasnt that she had suddenly started to be kind, but the food had already been made. It was hard to eat, and it would be a waste to throw it away. It was better to give it to the beggars.
MO Ruyues carriage had just arrived at the entrance of the Bai manor when she saw Qi Qiaoing out to greet her.
Lady Qin, youre finally here. Young Miss has been talking about you for a long time, so she sent me out to wee you.
Youre the one who came to wee me. Im also going to treat Madam Bai first. Let your Young Miss line up behind her.
MO Ruyue handed the carriage to the servants of the Bai manor and walked with ease to the main courtyard where Madam Bai was.
You dont know about this. Our miss is in Madams room right now. Miss
()uyang is there too.
Qi Qiao followed behind Lin Xi and took the initiative to reveal the answer to her question.
MO Ruyue nodded but didnt give any response this time.
When she reached Madam Bais room, she realized that there were a few other women in the room, and they were talking to Madam Bai warmly.
Usually, when guests came to pay a new years visit, they would only meet in the flower hall. If they could enter the bedroom, their rtionship must be extraordinary.
Lady Qin, dont you think its a coincidence? We were just talking about you and this person came.
When Madam Bai saw that MO Ruyue had arrived, she immediately stood up with a smile to wee him.
The rest of the women also stood up and looked at MO Ruyue with interest. However, their eyes were kind and friendly, and there was no sense of superiority.
Madam Qin, these are my close friends. They originally heard that I was already terminally ill and were burning with anxiety, so they specially came from all over to see me. I thought it would be thest time we could see each other, but I didnt expect to hear the news that Ive recovered. They al]. said that they wanted to see you, the divine doctor who saved my life.
Madam Bai said with a smile. She was also exining to MO Ruvue the reason why these people had gathered here.
Lets treat them first. Jiaojiao and Zhu Zhu will being after us. Besides, today is the Cold Food Festival.
MO Ruyue could tell from the womens clothes and temperament that they were all rich and pampered. However, she didnt have any intention of clinging to them. She just wanted to finish the treatment quickly and go home to apany her babies.
Lady Qin, we dont have any ill intentions. We just want to see Qiuhongs
Savior. If you feel that we will disturb you, we can also wait in another room. A beautiful woman with a graceful face and elegant temperament came forward and said with a gentle and friendly attitude.
Madam, you worry too muclm I just want to finish the treatment as soon as possible. My babies are waiting for me at home. Today is the first day of the Hanshi Festival, I cant just leave them at home.
Although MO Ruyues temper was unmoved by force or persuasion, she had a good rtionship with the Bai family now, and the attitudes of these nobledies were also good, so although her attitude could not be said to be close, it was not very unreasonable.
Weve all heard Qiuhong mention it, so weve also prepared a meeting gift for
Madam Qins babies.
Anotherdy who looked rather heroic said with a smile.
Thank you for your generosity, but I think I should not ept a reward without doing anything. I am not worthy of this gift.
MO Ruyues current wealth was probably worth more than the few nobledies present, so she didnt care about the gifts. However, the meaning behind these gifts was not ordinary.
That madam raised her brows slightly. Although she was rejected by MO Ruyue, there was no displeasure on her face as if she had been offended, and she just smiled.
The few of them greeted Madam Bai and MO Ruyue in turn and left the room, leaving Bai Shijiao behind.
Lady Qin, I just heard that you brought a lot of noodles into the city. Where are you going to send them? She asked as she watched MO Ruyue treat her mother.
You want it?
MO Ruyue nced at her and immediately saw through Bai Shijiaos little thoughts.
Madam Bai also red at her daughter. Although she could understand her feelings, it was embarrassing to say it.
The restaurant managers daughter had beenpletely smitten by someone elses cooking. It was obvious that she was going to give it to someone else, but she was still tempted. This made Madam Bai feel like covering her face.
Bai Shijiao seemed to realize that she had gone too far and her face turned red.
She only chuckled and did not say anything.
I can save a few for vou. but Im going to give the rest to beggars.
MO Ruyue said truthfully.
In fact, no matter who she gave it to, the key was not to waste it.
Give it to me, give it all to me, Ill use other things to exchange with you!
Bai Shijiao could not resist the temptation of delicious food and said hurriedly. She could also take out the noodles made by her own restaurant and distribute them to the beggars. Although the taste was far inferior, at least they could still fill their stomachs when they ate it. It could be considered an equivalent exchange..
Chapter 325 - 325: It’s A Woman’s Nature to Love Beauty
Chapter 325: Its A Womans Nature to Love Beauty
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue nomittally shrugged. As you wish.
These two words immediately made Bai Shijiao smile, she lifted her skirt and wanted to run out.
Do you still remember that you want to quit sugar?
The words behind her made her stop in her tracks. She turned to look at MO Ruyue and asked hesitantly, Lady Qin, youre going back on your word again?
Bai Shijiao remembered that MO Ruyue had said before that staple foods like rice and white noodles contained arge amount of sugar, so she had to control these staple foods appropriately.
The noodles were carefully made, apanied by dried fruits and jujubes. Eating one would probably make all her efforts go to waste, not to mention that she had to leave a cart full of them.
No, Im just reminding you to be careful. Youre losing weight for yourself anyway. Sess or failure is just a matter of a single thought.
Since MO Ruyue had agreed to leave the noodles for her, there was naturally a certain foundation of trust. However, trust was trust, and she still had to say what she had to.
After treating Madam Bai, MO Ruyue didnt pack up and leave as usual. Instead, she took off her gloves and said to her, Madam, if you have anything to say, please speak.
During the treatment process, she saw Madam Bai wanting to say something but stopped herself countless times. Perhaps she was afraid of disturbing her treatment, so she kept silent.
Lady Qin, arent you in a hurry to treat my daughter and Zhu Zhu? Madam Bai tried to probe.
Then please make it short.
MO Ruyue wasnt an unreasonable person, so she still had to give her the chance to speak.
Mother, Zhu Zhu and I are also going through acupuncture, so why dont you let me receive the treatment here? It wont interfere with your conversation with Lady Qin.
Bai Shijiao had been in Madam Bai i s room the whole time. At this moment, she interrupted,
Both mother and daughter looked at MO Ruyue at the same time. She nodded and said, Im fine with it.
Qi Qiao hurried back to get Bai Shijiaos clothes and helped her change. After that, she changed the treatment venue to Madam Bai l s house.
Lady Qin, its like this. Youve seen my best friends just now. Whether its their maiden family or their husbands family, they are all people with status.
Besides being pampered, they pay the most attention to beauty and health.
After they saw the effect of your treatment on my daughter and Zhu Zhu, they all became very interested. I wonder if Lady Qin has any special experience in the aspect of body beauty?
It was Madam Bai l s first time seeing MO Ruyues treatment process for her daughter. They both had to do acupuncture, but the methods werepletely different.
As she spoke, she looked at it and seemed to be a little entranced.
MO Ruyues technique and the frequency of the acupuncture were in sync with a kind of rhythm. It was difficult for people who were not familiar with music to see it. It just so happened that Madam Bai l s zither skills were excellent, so she was fascinated by it.
MO Ruyue smiled. Its a womans nature to love beauty. Im no exception. Its just that dont people like them have people who specialize in beauty and maintenance at home?
She also knew that womens money was the easiest to earn, but she didntck money now. What shecked was time to spend with her babies.
Of course there is, but now that Lady Qins medical skills are well-known in the world, and they have also seen the effect of my daughters weight loss, they still want to try a faster and more effective method.
Madam Bai was like a lobbyist, trying her best to persuade her. Lady Qin, these people are rare human resources. As long as they can be your regr customers, they will also be your help in the future when necessary. Perhaps you can consider this?
She saw that although MO Ruyue had been silent, she didnt seem to refuse or be impatient. She thought that this might work.
MO Ruyue was also seriously considering Madam Bai l s words.
It was true that she could be unafraid of anything by herself. However, she still had her babies. This would greatly increase the chances of her being controlled by others. She had been considering whether she should go to Ping City now because she was worried that she would be controlled by Duanmu Xize if she was too close.
If there were more constraints, even if he wanted to take advantage of it, he
would have to consider whether he could afford the corresponding cost.
Madam Bai, you should know that because of my babies, I dont ept treatment orders from far away anymore. Your close friends wont stay in other ces for treatment, right?
MO Ruyues question meant that she had indeed been moved, which was also excellent news for Madam Bai.
Lady Qin, have you ever considered opening a rted shop? You should know that women are willing to pay any price to be beautiful and to maintain their youth forever.
Madam Bai l s words reminded MO Ruyue of another thing. Imperial Doctor Tian had once said that he wanted her to be a shareholder and share the profits so that she could be the heir of Huichun Hall in the future.
She could take the opportunity tounch a beauty salon. She had a lot of ancient beauty recipes. This way, she and Huichun Hall could achieve mutual sess and make their brand more famous. It was a good choice.
Alright, Madam Bai. Give me some time to think about it.
MO Ruyues words made Madam Bai smile. It didnt matter if she didnt agree immediately. If she could relent, it meant that there was a chance.
After finishing the treatment at Bai manor, MO Ruyue didnt go home directly. Instead, she turned around and went to Huichun Hall.
Although it was still new years Day, Huichun Hall was always closed. It just so happened that it was Imperial DoctorTians turn to be on duty today, so she had to go and pay her new year greetings.
MO Ruyue led the horse to the door of Huichun Hall, but suddenly found that the door was closed. There was a closed sign hanging on the door, and only a small side door was still open.
She tied the big ck horse to the horse post in front of the door and walked into Huichun Hall.
There was no one in the main hall, but there seemed to be a sounding from the backyard. She immediately went to the backyard.
A medicine boy hurriedly walked over. It was her little assistant, Dong Qing.
Dong Qing, whats going on? Why is the Huichun Hall closed?
MO Ruyue immediately called out to him.
Lady Qin, why did youe?
When Dong Qing saw MO Ruyue, he was surprised and extremely happy. After all, MO Ruyue had been on leave before the new year and would only be back after the Lantern Festival.
Im here to wish Imperial Doctor Tian a happy new year. Also, what happened?
MO Ruyue asked again.
Madam Qin, you dont know, but something happened in the hall. Dong Qing hesitated for a moment, but still told the truth. It happened before the new year. Elder Tian said that you have to apany the babies during this time, so its better not to disturb you and we solve it ourselves. In fact, Huichun Hall was closed on New Years Eve.
What happened? Where is Elder Tian now?
MO Ruyue suddenly had a bad premonition, but Dong Qing couldnt get to the point even after talking for a long time, so she suddenly became a little anxious.
Theres a new doctor in our hall, surnamed Xue. He received a consultation before the new year and a life was lost. In order to cover up his mistake, doctor Xue stole the forbidden medicine from the hall and then framed Elder Tian. Now, Elder Tian is in the prison of the government office.
Dong Qing briefly exined what had happened, and MO Ruyue immediately asked, Is it the forbidden drug that only Elder Tian is keeping? How did that Xue guy manage to steal it?
Chapter 326 - 326: Paper Can ‘t Contain Fire
Chapter 326: Paper Can t Contain Fire
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Because we still had Doctor Xus help. Now that hes escaped, we cant find him, so we cant save Elder Tian.
I see.
After MO Ruyue understood the whole story, she nodded and said, Leave this matter to me. You guys focus on opening the hall. Ill go and see Elder Tian first.
After leaving Huichun Hall, MO Ruyue went straight to the government office of the county.
She and the government office runners of the magistrates office could be considered old acquaintances. With her bulging purse, she opened the way and saw Imperial Doctor Tian without any difficulty.
Because of his character and medical ethics, he was highly respected in the entire county, so even though he was now in prison, he did not suffer much. The cell he was in was the driest and rtively warmer in the entire prison. There was even some light during the day.
The straw mat in the prison was covered with a thick mattress. The quilt and pillow were also brand new and soft. There was also a table, brush, ink, and paper in the prison. Even themp had a bronze base. It was obvious that someone had already taken care of it.
Lady Qin, why did youe?
Elder Tian suddenly saw MO Ruyue and asked the same question as Dong Qing.
Elder Tian, why didnt you send someone to tell me that such a big thing
happened?
Although MO Ruyue asked this, she knew the reason very well.
He knew that he was the person who hated trouble the most, so he didnt want to trouble her.
Dong Qing told you everything?
Elder Tian sighed. He should have thought of it when MO Ruyue appeared. Such a big thing had happened in Huichun Hall. If she wanted to know, how could they hide it?
Yes, but he only gave meRuyue a rough idea, so I came.
MO Ruyue sat down on the futon opposite Elder Tian and prepared to listen attentively.
Elder Tian also knew that no one could change her mind once she had decided on something, so he could only tell her what had happened from the beginning.
On the 25th day of the twelfth lunar month, someone suddenly came to Huichun Hall for medical treatment. It was a rich businessman from another part of the city who lived in a local estate.
Originally, he had nned to take his family back to his hometown for the new year, but he had a sudden illness before he could set off. Now, he was foaming at the mouth, unconscious, and twitching constantly. His family immediately took him to Huichun Hall.
Doctor Xue had entered Huichun Hall at the beginning of the twelfth lunar month. He had always wanted to do his best to show off, so he had given up a lot of rest time and received arge number of patients in order to gain a firm foothold in Huichun Hall as soon as possible.
The rich man had originally been waiting for another doctors diagnosis, but he was coincidentally seen by Doctor Xue, who came to see him on his rest day. He took the opportunity to help. After receiving the patient, he determined that the rich man had mental illness, so he took the medicine. The situation was indeed alleviated, but the effect was very slow.
In order to be quick, he inserted more needles. However, after a few more, not only did it not work, but the situation suddenly worsened.
Doctor Xue immediately thought of seeking Doctor Xus help because Doctor Xu was deeply trusted by Imperial Doctor Tian. Sometimes, he would be able to obtain the key to the medicine storage room, and there would definitely be medicine that could save an emergency.
Because Doctor Xue had already made a rough estimate of everyone in Huichun Hall, he had deliberately tried to please Doctor Xu. He had spent a lot of effort and money on him. For this reason, Doctor Xu promised to find him a special medicine that could save the patient, but only this time.
After that, Doctor Xu took out a medicine from the medicine storage. Who would have thought that after the rich merchant took it, he would vomit blood on the spot and die. Doctor Xue and Doctor Xu were both flustered. After some discussion, they decided to push all the me onto Imperial Doctor Tian. After all, the key to the medicine storage room was almost entirely kept by Imperial Doctor Tian.
They had even imitated Imperial Doctor Tians handwriting and forged the prescription and the records of the patients who had received the medicine. Afterwards, Doctor Xu had used the excuse of going home to celebrate the new year and had disappeared.
The rich merchants family had originally left him in Huichun Hall out of trust. They had been told that the rich merchants situation was gradually improving, so they nned to find the rich merchant and ask if they should prepare to leave or stay here for the new year.
However, they were told that they could not visit him for the time being. They could visit him when he was seriously ill, but now that his condition had improved, she could not. This aroused the suspicion of his family members, who made a fuss and insisted on seeing him.
In the end, the truth couldnt be hidden forever. Only then did they realize that he had been gone for two days.
After the matter was blown up, Imperial Doctor Tian finally knew what had happened. He immediately came to ask, but he ran into the angry family members of the patient. If it were not for the other people in Huichun Hall who stopped him, he would have been beaten up badly.
When Imperial Doctor Tian said this, he couldnt help but sigh again, his eyes filled with sorrow and gloominess. MO Ruyue knew that he was pained by Doctor Xus betrayal. It could be said that in Huichun Hall, he was almost equivalent to Imperial Doctor Tians left and right arms, and he had never been mistreated.
Now, because of a Doctor Xue that he had only met for a short time, he had betrayed Imperial Doctor Tian, who had always supported him. Even if he had received money and benefits from Doctor Xue, he shouldnt have ended up like Elder Tian, Dong Qing told me that you sent people to look for him after the incident, but found that the building was already empty, right? If this is the case, I dont think that Doctor
Xu was bribed by Doctor Xue, and there should be someone else behind this.
MO Ruyue was keenly aware that the whole thing was strange because of the medicine that Doctor Xu had taken out.
This medicine was a forbidden medicine with very strict control. If it wasnt for Imperial Doctor Tian, who was a famous and experienced doctor, even keeping it would get into trouble. It wasnt that Doctor Xu didnt have any other choice, but he took the medicine directly. Although there were some areas that were right, the consequences would be unimaginable if there was a mistake in the control of the dosage.
Youre saying that someone is targeting me on purpose? Imperial Doctor Tian said in shock.
He had already retired and returned to his hometown for many years. Even when he was in the pce, he had always been very cautious. He had never offended anyone, and he was already so old and one step away from death. Why would someone want to harm him?
Whats the magistrates current attitude? I think the environment here is good, but you!re old, after all. If you stay here for too long, there will be problems.
MO Ruyue sized up the surrounding environment. In her heart, she was already determined to bring Imperial Doctor Tian out of here first.
The eldest master did not make things difficult for me. He only said that there was insufficient evidence and that I would be temporarily imprisoned. Ive already cleaned up the ce, so I can make an exception and stay herefortably.
As Imperial Doctor Tian spoke, he suddenly choked and coughed, his face instantly turning red.
Since theres insufficient evidence, why do they want to put you in prison? MO Ruyue said unhappily.
She stood up and helped Imperial Doctor Tian up, solemnly saying, Elder
Tian, please wait for me. I will bring you out very soon.
Lady Qin, Ill have to trouble you again.
Imperial Doctor Tian smiled bitterly. Originally, when he invited MO Ruyue out of the mountain, he had said that he would be the person who would block the trouble for her. In the end, she had gotten into God knows how much trouble because she had joined Huichun Hall.
Now, he still wanted her to run errands for him. He really didnt have the face to see her..
Chapter 327 - 327: A Straight Body Fears No Shadow
Chapter 327: A Straight Body Fears No Shadow
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The Bai familys master, Bai Jin, was talking to his son when he heard someone outside, Master, Young Master, Lady Qin has returned and said she wants to see you two.
Lady Qin? Hurry up and invite her in!
Bai Jinshang and his son looked at each other and immediately went out to wee her.
MO Ruyue hurried over under the lead of a servant. As soon as she saw the father and son of the Bai family, she said directly, Master Bai, I need your help with something.
Lady Qin, pleasee in and talk.
Bai Jinshang had never seen MO Ruyue ask for help. Now that this opportunity hade to him, he naturally had no reason to let it go. He immediately let her go to the study.
As soon as the three of them entered the study and sat down, MO Ruyue briefly exined the whole matter, and then said to Bai Jinshang, Master Bai, do you have any way to get in touch with the county magistrate and rescue Elder Tian from the prison?
In fact, she could have gone to look for the county magistrate, Chen Luyu,
directly. However, the whole matter felt strange. Perhaps he was drinking right
now, waiting for her toe.
Hence, MO Ruyue would rather give this favor to Bai Jin.shang than give Chen Luyu any chance to take advantage of the situation.
Lady Qin, dont worry about this. Elder Tian is highly respected in the city.
There are many people who are willing to help with such a big matter. Just give me some time to make arrangements. After all, the family members of the deceased are foreigners and may not fall for our tricks.
Bai Jinshang then turned to his son, Bai Shiyuan, and said, Go and get your uncles here. Just tell them the general idea of the matter. Theres no need to be too detailed.
Bai Shiyuan nodded to MO Ruyue and turned to leave.
Lady Qin, that Doctor Xu is also not a local and was brought here by Imperial Doctor Tian. If he is in the vicinity, I can help, but if he is further away, Im afraid I will have to find someone else.
He was very clear that MO Ruyue would not just save Imperial Doctor Tian from prison, but would help him to the end, so he took the initiative to give a suggestion.
Of course, MO Ruyue wanted to help Imperial Doctor Tian, but she had to at least settle down the babies before she could be at ease and free to do this.
Lady Qin, if it wasnt for you, my wife and daughters lives would have been in danger. Shiyuan and I wouldnt be able to repay this favor in our entire lives, let alone you owing us. As long as theres anything you need my help with, please dont hesitate to ask.
With Bai Jinshangs statement, MO Ruyue did not say anything more. She only nodded slightly, epting his favor.
Soon, a few men came to Bai Jinshangs study one after another. When they saw MO Ruyue, they all greeted her in a friendly manner.
There was nock of MO Ruyues patients among these people, so she knew that these people were all famous people in the city. With theming forvvard, they would definitely be able to bail Imperial Doctor Tian out of prison.
Very quickly, there was new news from outside. Imperial Doctor Tian had already been released from prison and had been brought back by the Tian family.
However, even though he was out of prison, his movements were still restricted. There were special bailiffs guarding his house, monitoring everyone who went in and out, and everything.
After MO Ruyue heard this news, she finally felt a little more at ease.
As long as Imperial Doctor Tian could leave that cold and humid environment and have his family to take care of him, even if he couldnt leave the Tian family and return to Huichun Hall for the time being, at least his body wouldnt copse.
Lady Qin, you can rest assured and go back first. We will continue to investigate Doctor Xus matter, and I believe there will be good news soon. Bai Jinshang knew that MO Ruvue still missed the children at home, so he took the initiative to take on all the work.
Thats good. Ill take my leave first. If theres any news or changes, well have a lot of time to contact each other.
MO Ruyue was not pretentious and epted Bai Jinshangs good intentions.
Although she was an expert in finding people,pared to these local tyrants, they had more resources and manpower, which was rtively more efficient.
After such a dy, it was already noon, and she returned home muchter than usual.
However, MO Ruyue hade on big ck, so he had also galloped at full speed on the return trip, rushing out in time.
Although she hadnt reached the door, MO Ruyue had already sensed that there were many people in the house, and they all looked like the kind wouldnte. Although she didnt know what had happened, she still whipped her again and rushed to the door in an instant.
Mother is back! I
San Baos surprised voice came from the courtyard, followed by a series of footsteps. Tang Tang ran out of the courtyard and plunged into MO Ruyues arms.
Tang Tang, whats wrong with the house?
As MO Ruyue spoke, she saw that the courtyard was filled with people, each of them holding a te. Although their expressions were ugly, they subconsciously looked away when their eyes met hers.
Mother, they said that they ate our food and vomited and had diarrhea. They want to ask you for an exnation.
Tang Tang had said the main point of the matter in one sentence, and MO Ruyue could guess the rest with her brain.
Its alright. Mother is back. Dont be afraid.
MO Ruyue touched Tang Tangs head, but she shook her head and said, Mother, I am not afraid. Eldest Brother said that we are upright and not afraid of the shadow. We are also not afraid that they wille to our door for no reason.
Although she was still trembling a little when she spoke, her eyes and tone were unusually firm. She was no longer the timid person she used to be.
MO Ruyue nodded in relief.
Tang Tang had grown up after all. She was calm and confident, which was what she wanted the most.
Come, lets go home.
She held Tang Tangs hand and walked straight into her own courtyard.
There were more than a dozen people standing in the courtyard, including the Qin Vige chief and even their own babies. Although they were all dressed very tightly, their small faces were still red from the cold.
MO Ruyues heart ached, as if someone had punched her in the chest.
It would have been fine if they had been ying outside with their little faces
red, but they were actually so cold. She couldnt even stand them being cold
and hungry, let alone seeing them frozen like this. Her face immediately sank.
Its the new year. You guys are not at home, but you have the mood toe to
my house to join in the fun. Why? Cant you big Buddhas be amodated in
my own courtyard?
Her words were vicious and cold, causing everyone present to shiver. However, when they thought of the suffering their own family had suffered, they forced themselves to straighten their backs.
Lady Qin, shouldnt you ask what we are doing here?
The vige chief walked out from the crowd. His words were like the backbone of the group, making their expressions look more confident.
MO Ruyue turned to look at Da Bao. Da Bao, tell me. What happened?
Just now, Tang Tang had only given a brief exnation. There were some details that still needed to be rified..
Chapter 328 - 328: Someone Poisoned the Food?
Chapter 328: Someone Poisoned the Food?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Today, well send noodles to the uncles and aunties in the vige ording to the rules ????? Bao began to narrate in detail.
The rule here was that on the first day of the Cold Food Festival, each family in the vige would take out a portion of the noodles they made and give everyone a little. The amount was not a lot, but it was just a kind gesture, representing the mutual help of the people in the vige.
Even if their family really couldnt feed themselves, they would send some dried fruits and mountain products. They would nevere empty-handed or simply stay behind closed doors.
Early in the morning, Da Bao brought his younger siblings to each house to pay a new years visit and deliver noodles. They didnt finish delivering all of them until noon.
Unexpectedly, just after the meal time, people came to the door one after another, saying that after eating the noodles they sent, they began to have abdominal pain, nausea, vomiting, and diarrhea, so they wanted an exnation.
He suggested that they take back the noodles they had sent and wait for mother toe back to check if there were any problems. However, those families all opposed it unanimously. They were afraid that he would take the things away and then they would not be able to exin it.
Therefore, Da Bao went to invite the vige head and asked each of the families with the problem to send one person. He personally took the noodles that had the problem and waited for Mo Ruvue toe back in the Oin familvs main branch.
A total of eight families had problems, so sixteen people hade to MO Ruyues house to wait. This was the scene she saw when she returned.
Mother, weve also shown uncle and aunty the ce where we put the noodles. There are definitely no rats or insects. Its all clean. As for what exactly happened, you have toe and see.
Da Bao looked at MO Ruyue after he finished speaking and didnt say much.
The others didnt say anything when they heard this. It was obvious that they had silently agreed with what he said, and there was nothing to add to it.
ording to Da Bao, Ive already sent food to all the families. If theres really a problem with my familys noodles, it shouldnt have been just these few families.
Before she could finish her sentence, someone immediately retorted, Lady
Qin, our family only met with this ident after eating your familys noodles. Could it be that you want to shirk the responsibility?
MO Ruyue nced at that person. His wife had even gone to Aunt Lius house on New Years Eve to get closer to her. It was hard to say if she was not deliberately making things difficult for her after being rejected. She was never afraid to specte human nature with the greatest malice.
Dont say that, Lady Qin also wants to find out the truth of the matter, and shes not someone who will shirk responsibility.
The vige chief said something fair at this time, instead of looking like he was going to condemn them.
First of all, the ingredients in my house are carefully selected, and there is no mold that has gone bad. Secondly, the cooking process is clean and hygienic. After all, my babies and I also need to eat, so there is no need to divide it into two portions and treat it differently.
There are many possible reasons for this result. Well only know after checking them one by one. Im only saying one possibility. How am I shirking responsibility?
MO Ruyue was responding to that mans words and was also saying it for everyone to hear. Of course, she didnt intend to say the same thing a second time.
When the man who first raised the question heard this, he could not find anything to refute, so he closed his mouth and shrank back into the crowd, somewhat regretting being the first to stand out.
Then, Lady Qin, in your opinion, how should we investigate this matter? As long as you tell us a way, well all cooperate.
The vige chief immediately asked another question on behalf of everyone, and the others immediately nodded in agreement.
Its not difficult. Excluding the hygiene problem of the ingredients at the beginning, its either someone deliberately poisoned the food or ate something that has a conflicting nature. I need these people to tell me about the cooked wheaten food they have received and what they have eaten at noon. Then, I can make a judgment.
When MO Ruyues words came out, a few people immediately panicked. What? Someone would poison the food? Our family is an honest family, we have never offended anyone, how could we be poisoned!
Aiya, didnt Lady Qin say that its only a possibility? Its not confirmed yet!
Thats right. Hurry up and think about what we had for lunch and what we received in the morning. Its so cold today. Its not good to stay out in the cold!
While everyone was talking, Da Bao had already brought Er Bao and San Bao into the house to bring out tables and chairs. They even prepared a pen and paper.
MO Ruyue gave them an appreciative smile and then sat down with a pen.
Come,e, everyone line up and say it one by one. If you cant remember, one of you can go home and bring some of the things youve received for Lady Qin to see.
The vige chief also began to help maintain order.
Who wouldve thought that the new year wouldnt be peaceful? It was better to quickly settle this and go home to warm up. Todays winter seemed to be particrly cold.
MO Ruyue quickly recorded the information provided by each household. She only recorded three households before she found a problem. Youve all received dried mushrooms from the Qin family? She stopped writing and asked every family present.
My family received it.
My family too.
Thats right. It was Madam Wang who brought Qingyuan and Qingfei to deliver it personally. She said that there was not much rice and noodles at home and they could not make so many noodles. They could only send some dried mushrooms that they picked in autumn and dried. It was just for the asion.
There are quite a few types. I counted them one by one. Although there arent many, its a good enough thought.
The people present nodded one after another. It seemed that every family had indeed received the dried mushrooms sent by Qin Xu e s wife.
What kind of mushroom is it? Can you show me?
When MO Ruyue said this, there were already some quick-witted people who immediately thought of more things.
Ill go back and get it. Lady Qin, wait for a while.
Some people stood up and went home to get their things without a word, while the others looked at each other withplicated expressions.
Soon, the person who went to get the things came back with a te. There were indeed many different kinds of mushrooms piled on it.
MO Ruyue flipped through it carefully. Suddenly, her hand paused and she picked up a few dried mushrooms. Her eyes narrowed slightly.
Let me see what kind of wheaten food your family has received.
She then checked the types of noodles Da Bao had given out and understood.
Did you receive the dried mushrooms before or after you received the noodles from my house?
Before she could get an answer to her question, she heard an anxious shout from outside the door.
Is Sister-inw at home? Aiya, tell me, what should we do about this!
Madam Wang came in hurriedly with a basket in her hand, followed by Qin Qingyuan and Qin Qingfei.
As soon as she entered the door, she knelt down with a plop before she could see MO Ruyues face clearly. She pulled the siblings and said, Quickly, quickly apologize to your aunt!
As this was not the first time she had done this, even though everyone was shocked by her actions, they still showed a look of disgust and impatience.
Madam Wang, what are you doing? Lets talk this out, get up quickly!
When the vige chief saw this, he felt his temples throb. He knew that nothing good woulde out of this rtionship with the Qin family..
Chapter 329 - 329: Mixed Up?
Chapter 329: Mixed Up?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Qin Xus family, youd better get up quickly. Lady Qin isnt unreasonable. If theres anything, you should say it clearly. Whats the matter with kneeling down as soon as youe!
Two aunts walked over. One of them pulled on Madam Wangs arm, trying to pull her up, while the other went to pull the siblings.
No, just let me kneel! I really dont have the face to see Sister-inw!
Madam Wang pulled at the aunt who was pulling her and refused to get up. Qin Qingyuan and his sister also knelt on the ground. They didnt raise their heads or speak, and they ignored the aunt who was trying to pull them up.
Lady Qin, you should also say something. If not, whats the matter with the both of you kneeling here? Someone also advised MO Ruyue.
Make her kneel.
MO Ruyues words caused everyone to turn around to look at her. They saw her sitting at the table without moving. A cold light shed in her eyes, just as cold and indifferent as when she had just changed her personality.
It had been a long time since they had seen such an expression on her face. They subconsciously kept silent and did not dare to persuade her anymore.
What happened today has nothing to do with Sister-inws family. Theres nothing wrong with the noodles she made. I gave her the mushrooms. Theres something wrong with the mushrooms.
Madam Wang was also frightened by MO Ruyues gaze. However, the arrow was already on the bow, and she had no choice but to fire it. She could not regret it, so she could only brace herself and continue.
This, this is the dried mushroom that I wanted to give everyone.
She took out one from the basket and shook it, then took out another one and said, This is for sister-inw, but its not for food. Its for medicine. I thought I could exchange it for some money with her.
This is because this kind of mushroom originally has a simr appearance, and its even more difficult to distinguish them after theyre dried. When the children went to deliver the dried mushrooms today, they mixed up the medicinal and edible ones, so Thats why weve caused such a huge disaster!
As Madam Wang spoke, she couldnt help but choke up. She looked at MO
Ruyue sorrowfully and extended the two dried mushrooms in her hand to her.
Sister-inw, look, Im really not lying. You can definitely recognize me, right? I I know it was wrong of me to think that I could get something without working, so Im prepared to use something useful to exchange for some money with you, but who would have thought
She turned to look at the two children behind her and cried, Its all my fault. If I had separated the two dried mushrooms, the children wouldnt have made a mistake and caused everyone to suffer. They also said that Sister-inw was wronged.
If you want to me or punish me, Ill ept it, but please dont take it out on the children!
She cried andined for a long time. Even the vigers who had suffered showed expressions of pity, but MO Ruyues expression did not change. There was not a trace of warmth or wavering in his eyes.
Are you done?
She saw that Madam Wang had stopped and only asked lightly.
Madam Wang nodded. Then, she felt a gust of wind blow against her face. With a crisp pa sound, her body tilted and she fell to the ground. Her face was red and swollen.
Aiya, Lady Qin, how can you hit me?
The aunt, who was standing beside Madam Wang, was really frightened this time. She quickly helped Madam Wang up and couldnt help but speak up for her.
Hit someone? If its necessary, its not impossible to kill.
MO Ruyue said coldly.
Her words caused an uproar. No one had expected her to say such treasonous words so frankly and directly.
Its really hard to tell the difference between the two dried mushrooms, but the medicinal mushrooms have a pungent smell, while the edible ones dont. No matter how stupid Qin Qingyuan and Qin Qingfei are, they still dont know how to tell the difference between the two mushrooms after so long?
Also, this medicinal mushroom itself has a certain toxicity. Eating it at the same time with many dried fruits will cause the toxicity to mutate and intensify the toxin content. Eating a small amount will cause poisoning signs such as vomiting and diarrhea. If the dosage is higher than a certain amount, it will kill people.
With every word that MO Ruyue said, the faces of the people present turned paler. Now, they only realized that they had just walked one round at the gates of hell. No wonder MO Ruyue would directly hit her. If they were in MO Ruyues position, they would definitely not be able to hold back.
No, I didnt mean it. I just heard that this mushroom can be used in medicine and wanted to exchange it for some money. I definitely wouldnt dare to harm anyone!
Madam Wang was also shocked and terrified, and it didnt look like she was pretending. She waved her hands in denial.
I havent finished.
MO Ruyue interrupted her again. She held the two dried mushrooms in her palm and gently rubbed them, and they turned into a pile of powder.
If you eat these two mushrooms together, they are dozens of times more poisonous than the medicinal mushrooms. One bite is enough to kill you, but the dried mushroom you gave my family has both. Madam Wang, I think you really want to die.
As she spoke, she had already walked to Madam Wangs side. She pinched her chin with one hand and forced her to open her mouth, as if she was going to pour the powder into her mouth.
The mushroom she had crushed was the one Qin Qingyan had just brought over. He had picked it out from the dried mushrooms Madam Wang had sent to her house.
Oh, please spare me. I wouldnt dare to harm you, Sister-inw. Help!
When Madam Wang heard that sentence, she was already so scared that she couldnt speak. When she saw that MO Ruyue was actually forcing her to eat the poisonous mushroom powder, she immediately came back to her senses and started to struggle violently.
Lady Qin, if you have something to say, say it properly. Dont dare to take peoples lives!
The vige chief saw that things were not looking good, and quickly went forward to snatch her away.
Dont move! My hands are shaking.
MO Ruyues words made the vige chief stop in his tracks, and also made the other eager vigers not dare to act rashly. Madam Wang, who was still struggling, froze in ce.
Lady Qin, you must think about your babies. You have to pay with your life for killing someone!
He tried to persuade MO Ruyue again, afraid that if MO Ruyues hand really trembled, it would cause irreparable consequences.
Im in charge of killing and burying people. Saving people is also my old profession. Its not that easy to die.
MO Ruyue took out a porcin bottle and showed it to Madam Wang. This is the antidote for all kinds of poisons. Now, tell me, what do you want to do?
W-what? Sister-inw, what are you talking about? I dont know anything. I didnt want to harm you!
Madam Wang was already scared out of her wits. Her face was as white as a sheet of paper and her whole body was shaking like a sieve. When she spoke, her teeth were ttering. If it wasnt for MO Ruyues good ears, she wouldnt have been able to hear what she was saying.
Lady Qin, lets talk this over. Quickly throw away the poisonous mushroom powder in your hand. If by ident its swallowed by Madam Wang, its not a joke!
When the vige chief saw that MO Ruyue was serious, he broke out in a cold sweat. Lets not talk about whether Madam Wang really wanted to harm MO Ruyue. Her own life was already about to be lost, so how could she have the courage to continue to be stubborn?
There must have been some misunderstanding. It was better for everyone to sit down and talk about it slowly.
Talk properly?
MO Ruyues eyes stared at the vige chief coldly. She didnt hide the killing intent in her eyes at all. Even the murderous aura that she had restrained for a long time and hadnt released for a long time was unhesitatingly released..
Chapter 330 - 330: Fainted From Fright
Chapter 330: Fainted From Fright
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Although the two mushrooms look simr, they grow inpletely different environments. Also, very few people know the medicinal value of this poisonous mushroom. The most well-known thing is its toxicity.
But Madam Wang said that she knew that these mushrooms could be used in medicine, and that she had specially saved up a bunch of them to exchange for money with me? Youre a woman who doesnt go out of the house. Where did you get this news from?
MO Ruyue bluntly pointed out the biggest loophole in Madam Wangs lie.
I, I just heard it from someone. Before, when I went to the city to find my sons father, I thought that I could sell some mountain herbs and get some money, so, so I went to the medicine shop to inquire.
It was difficult for Madam Wang toe up with an excuse in such a situation, and it was even a story with very few loopholes that could cover up this lie.
The vigers all nodded, as if they agreed with her.
I think you wont shed a tear until you see your coffin.
As MO Ruyue spoke, she stuffed the powder into Madam Wangs mouth at lightning speed, and then covered her mouth tightly to prevent her from vomiting.
Madam Wang was stunned for a moment, and then she began to struggle violently. Even Qin Qingyuan and Qin Qingfei pounced over and began to tear MO Ruyues hands away.
Aunt, what are you doing? Shell die! Save my mother!
Qin Qingfei was scared out of her wits. She couldnt care less about MO Ruyues methods and kept hitting her arm.
However, her strength was not even a mosquito bite to MO Ruyue. With just a slight shake of her arm, she was thrown away.
Qin Qingyuan no longer had his usual calm and steady demeanor. His face was pale, and there were still traces of forced calmness in his eyes. However, more of his panic and helplessness surged up and could no longer be hidden.
No matter how deep his thoughts were, he was still a child who was not even ten years old. It would be a lie to say that he was not afraid when he was about to lose his mother!
He always knew that his mother was the only one who truly loved him and was willing to give lin evervthing for him. If his mother was gone- his nnreliahle father and his selfish and cold grandma would not give him and Qingfei any good days!
If his father were to remarry in the future, they would learn from the days that Da Bao and the others had lived!
Thinking of this, Qin Qingyuan panicked even more. Seeing that he couldnt pry MO Ruyues hand away, he immediately knelt down and took two steps back. He kept kowtowing to her and begging for mercy.Auntie, please spare my mother! Someone deliberately lied to her, saying that this mushroom can be used in medicine. Thats why she wanted to pick it and exchange it for money with you. She really didnt dare to harm you!
Mo Ruyue turned around and stared at Qin Qingyuan. Speak clearly, who told
you?
Qin Qingyuan did not dare to hide anything anymore. He quickly revealed everything.
It turned out that two days ago, a salesman hade to the Qin Vige. The new year goods he brought were rich and cheap, so they were very popr. Very quickly, the two baskets of new year goods were sold out.
Madam Wang was also thinking that it was going to be the new year in two days. Even if she bought a needle and thread, it would still be for the new year. However, she couldnt find a single copper coin in her pocket.
Madam Qin refused to see MO Ruyue not giving her the key. She didnt have the ability to force MO Ruyue to go to the county, so she still couldnt touch a single copper coin.
After thinking about it, she could only put on a sullen face and go out with some of the mountain goods at home, thinking that it would be good if she could exchange them for something.
She didnt expect that the peddler would happily ept the mountain goods when he saw them. However, the goods in her hands had already been sold out. Miss, what other mountain products do you have at home? Ill also buy them. His words made Madam Wangs eyes light up, but then they dimmed again.
Sigh, I dont have many mountain products left at home. It doesnt look like they can be sold for much. If I had known earlier, I would have prepared some earlier.
The itinerant peddlerughed when he heard this. My dear sister, he said, Youre guarding a treasure mountain without knowing it! Big Brother, what do you mean?
When Madam Wang heard this, she immediately perked up.
Do you know that there are mushrooms in this mountain that can be used in medicine? If you can find them, dry them and sell them in the medicine shop, you might make a lot of money! However, the medicine shop will take advantage of your ignorance and lower the price, so its best to sell it to people youre familiar with, who also know about herbs. Not to mention other things, you can definitely make a profit of a few hundred copper coins!
As the itinerant peddler spoke, he took out a fresh and air-dried mushroom from the bottom of the box and handed it to Madam Wang.
Take a look, have you ever seen such a mushroom?
Madam Wang carefully identified it. As expected, she had seen it before and had even eaten it. She nodded and said, Ive seen this before, but its snowing all over the mountains. I really dont know where to look for it!
The itinerant peddler smiled again and said, I know such a ce, but I cant leave. I have to go back to prepare the goods. I have to go to a few viges before the new year. Ill give you this opportunity. It seems that you are in trouble. Ill help you if I can.
When Madam Wang heard this, she was so grateful that she didnt know what to do. She leaned over and carefully memorized the two mushroom fields, preparing to enter the mountainter.
Lady, you should also remember that the mushrooms on the southern slope are edible, but they have no medicinal properties. The mushrooms on the northern slope have medicinal properties, but they cant be eaten. The two mushrooms are almost exactly the same. If you remember it wrong, it will be a big problem!
The itinerant peddler urged again and again, and seeing that Madam Wang really remembered it, he picked up the burden and left.
When Madam Wang returned home, she called the children and went straight to the mountains to pick mushrooms ording to the directions given by the itinerant peddler.
Aunt, this is what happened. My mother was thinking that if she were to pick the mushrooms back, she would directly give them to you, Aunt. Who knows, you might be able to use them! Then we can sell it for a few more copper coins, so that our family can have a good new year.
Aunt, my mother was only thinking for me and my sister. She really didnt have any intention of harming you!
Qin Qingyuan begged and begged. He was already sobbing so much that he could not speak. His cries had also attracted the sympathy of many people. Some of the soft-hearted people had already started to wipe their eyes with their sleeves.
Lady Qin, the matter is already very clear. Its not Madam Wang who wants to harm you. Please quickly save her!
The vige chief patiently listened to Qin Qingyuans words and quickly tried to persuade him again.
Madam Wangs face had already turned blue from holding back, and her eyes had also rolled back to the point that only a pair of white eyeballs were left. If MO Ruyue didnt save her, she was afraid that she would die.
MO Ruyue let go of her hand, straightened her back, and took two steps back. She watched as Madam Wang fell limply to the ground. She patted the remaining powder off her palm and said, Save who? I only fed her a handful of dried mushroom powder and it wasnt poisonous. If she didnt suspect that there was a ghoul, she wouldnt have fainted from fear.
After she said that, the vigers all heaved a sigh of relief.
Aunt, is my mother really alright?
Qin Qingyuan asked in disbelief.
He was about to foam at the mouth when he saw his mother. Could it be that the aunt was lying to him on purpose?
Dont ask me if you doubt me.. You dont believe me even after I tell you, isnt that nonsense?
Chapter 331 - 331: Apologize To The Babies
Chapter 331: Apologize To The Babies
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue didnt have a good attitude toward him at all. This kid was simply a bad person and would definitely be a disaster in the future.
She would allow him to grow up now. Anyway, they would not have the chance to meet again in the future. If he still had any evil thoughts when he grew up, she would definitely not show him any mercy.
Although Qin Qingyuan didnt know that MO Ruyue already had the intention to kill him, his instinctive awareness of danger made him shiver a few times, and he felt an inexplicable chill in his heart.
Then, it seems that todays incident was really a misunderstanding. Its really not a problem with Lady Qins noodles. Weve all med you wrongly.
When the vige chief heard this, he knew that these people who hade to condemn him were destined to fail. They didnt want to extort anything from MO Ruyue, but more so to use this to sell her a favor.
If it was proven that there was a problem with MO Ruyues noodles, they could magnanimously express that they would not pursue the matter. This would win her favor, and they could talk about future matters in the future. It was always better to keep the flow of water flowing slowly.
However, now everything had turned into bubbles. Not to mention selling a favor to Lady Qin, even if she didnt remember him and make trouble for him in the future, he would be burning incense.
Those families were obviously aware of this, and their faces were very ugly. If they had known this would happen, they would have suffered. They could have just said that they didnt mind.
That was still better thaning to their door now and blocking other peoples children from entering the house to warm up. Now that they had investigated it, it was not their business at all. How could they have the face to stay in this courtyard any longer?
Lady Qin, Im sorry, we didnt know either. Tell us how this matter became so serious!
A middle-aged man gritted his teeth and spoke first.
Yes, yes, who would have thought that this disaster was caused by a mushroom? We didnt mean to look for trouble during the new year, but this is a
misunderstanding. Lady Qin, Im really sorry.
In the future, we wont dare to casually look for her again. We must first ask her clearly before we act. This misunderstanding is causing everyone to feel ufortable.
The other vigers also began to speak one after another. Although they were all apologizing to MO Ruyue, they were all trying to shirk responsibility. As for the person who took the me in the end, it was, of course, Madam Wang who was still unconscious.
You guys sure have kept yourselves clean.
MO Ruyue smiled slightly. She hadnt even settled the score with them yet, and they were already trying to draw a clear line between them?
In your dreams!
Then what do you want, Lady Qin? We know that we have misunderstood you and have apologized to you. We are all from the same vige, you dont have to be so unforgiving, right?
The man who spoke first continued.
He was like a punching bag that was pushed out by everyone to bear MO Ruyues anger. They were very clear on the saying the gun hits the bird that takes the lead.
What do I want?
MO Ruyue repeated this sentence yfully.
My babies went to give you noodles ording to the rules, but what did you people give them in the end? One by one, the adults came to my house and said that there was a problem with my things. Sure, your family has suffered, but what was the fault of my babies? They to stand here with you guys in the ice and snow and wait for my return?
Its fine if theyre fine, but if anyone has a headache or fever, I wont let you
Her words were extremely unreasonable, and could even be said to be a p in the face.
All the adults in the courtyard had ashen faces. They couldnt fight back after being lectured by MO Ruyue.
They also felt aggrieved, but no matter how aggrieved they were, they couldnt be more aggrieved than the five children.
MO Ruyue was not an easy person to get along with, and the babies were her reverse scale, so it was understandable that she was furious now.
Lady Qin, they sincerely apologize to you and also feel very sorry for the babies.
Why dont you say something and see how this matter can be resolved?
The vige chief saw that it was not good to continue this stalemate, so he took the initiative to ask.
No matter what, he had to exin the way to solve the problem first.
Apologize to the babies and dont have any thoughts that you shouldnt have in the future. What should be yours cant run away. Dont even think about what shouldnt be. Remember my words. There wont be a second time!
MO Ruyue wanted to give them a beating, but when she saw the expressions of the babies looking at her, she gave up on this idea.
Although she was used to dealing with violence, she didnt want her babies to be like her.
She was forced to move forward by the environment, but they werent. They wouldnt have the chance to experience that feeling of living and dying.
No matter how unwilling they were, the dozen or so people in the courtyard still apologized to the babies. Although it might only be a word of apology, MO Ruyue had already achieved her goal.
Before they left the vige, the babies still had to stay in the vige. She couldnt guard them every day. If they were remembered, there would always be times when she would be careless.
So, she only gave them a short lesson and let them go.
At this time, Madam Wang slowly woke up. This timing was just right.
MO Ruyue didnt intend to expose her little scheme and only said coldly, Get
Then, she went to the kitchen to prepare the ginger soup for the babies to warm up.
The first day of the Cold Food Festival quietly passed in the midst of the storm.
The next day, MO Ruyue had just arrived at the Bai manor when she heard a piece of bad news.
So many people have been sent out, but they still cant find any trace of Doctor Xu? She asked in surprise.
On the surface, the Bai manor was only a rich family with a restaurant, but the real background was obviously more than that. Seeing that Bai Jinshang could still call the noble Ouyang couple family, it was clear that the two families families were not far apart.
Moreover, even if the Bai manor kept a low profile, they were still the local tyrant of this area. If they wanted to find someone, it shouldnt be difficult.
But even so, there was still no news of Doctor which was a little strange.
Lady Qin, it has only been a night. Perhaps there will be new news in two days. Besides, Imperial Doctor Tian has already been released from prison. He is only slightly restricted in his actions, but his life is not in danger. You dont have to worry about this.
Bai Jinshang still thought that mo Rufei was simply worried about Imperial Doctor Tians grievances, so he tried tofort her from this direction, but he saw her shaking her head.
I dont think things are that simple.
MO Ruyue suddenly had this thought after yesterdays incident.
She had originally felt that Imperial Doctor Tians matter was suspicious, but now that she thought about it, the matter had already been strung together. A hidden line that was faintly visible, directed at her and the people around her, was beginning to slowly reveal its ferocity.
Why do you say so?
Bai Jinshang was also a person who had experienced countless storms. When he heard MO Ruyues words, he vaguely guessed something. However, he was cautious by nature and still asked..
Chapter 332 - 332: The Gossip Is Too Detailed
Chapter 332: The Gossip Is Too Detailed
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When I got home yesterday, something happened at home, and the cause of the incident was a few days ago, the day Doctor Xu stole the forbidden medicine. So, I think that the two things may seem unrted, but they are actually rted.
MO Ruyue briefly exined and didnt go into detail about her familys situation. After all, she was only guessing now and stillcked evidence to support this guess.
Lady Qin, you mean that someone is targeting you and Imperial Doctor Tian?
Bai Jinshangs guess hade true, but this time MO Ruyue still shook her head.
No, its not directed at me or Imperial Doctor Tian, its only directed at me.
Imperial Doctor Tian was only innocently implicated.
MO Ruyue was very familiar with this kind of conspiracy. In her previous life, she often walked on the line between life and death and had experienced countless conspiracies and calctions. She was practically suffering from PTSD.
Bai Jinshang looked at MO Ruyue quietly. At this moment, he didnt know how to continue the conversation.
Alright, Master Bai, Ill have to trouble you to take care of Imperial Doctor
Tians matter. As for my matter, Ill handle it myself.
As MO Ruyue spoke, he prepared to give Madam Bai her routine treatment.
Lady Qin, since this matter is targeted at you, I cant just stand by and watch. If theres anything you need my help with, please let me know.
Bai Jinshang did not hesitate to express his attitude, but this time MO Ruyue still shook his head in response.
No, Master Bai, you must have your own difficulties now that youre living such a low-key life with your family, so I dont want to involve you in more trouble. Regarding Imperial Doctor Tians matter, once you find traces of Doctor Xu, just tell me directly. Dont take any action on your own. Leave these matters to me. After all, the source of this matter is me.
This time, MO Ruyue spoke in a tone that did not allow for rejection, and it also made Bai Jinshang clearly realize her seriousness and persistence.
This Well, since Lady Odn is so insistent, then I wont do things that are beyond my control.
Bai Jinshang nodded. He knew that MO Ruyue was a man of his word. Since she had told him so seriously, she definitely wouldnt want others to do anything that she didnt want.
After finishing the routine treatment, MO Ruyue was prepared to go to Imperial Doctor Tians house to check on the situation.
This old man was going to jail because he was implicated by her, so MO Ruyue felt guilty towards him.
As she was walking on the street with the big ck horse, she suddenly heard people gathering in a teahouse not far away, talking about an explosive news.
Have you guys heard? There have been explosions in the nearby cities, and the methods used are the same. I heard that the authorities are hard-pressed to catch the murderer, but theres still no progress.
I heard that it was the same chain of restaurants that suffered misfortune. Its not a small one, but the people in this small town didnt like it, so they didnt open their shops here. Now it seems that were lucky.
Thats right. Everyone in the restaurant died overnight, and many innocent people were affected by the explosion. Although the murderer gave the correspondingpensation in the end, which family wouldnt be troubled by such an incident during the new year?
What? The murderer was actually willing to paypensation? This is strange.
Its true. I heard it from a rtive of mine. He lived in the city where the explosion happened. His friend was also injured in the explosion when he tried to put out the fire.
So he also got thepensation?
Yes, it appeared at his bedside overnight. Its a total of fifty taels of silver, enough for him to recover and continue to support the family while he recuperates.
Everyonesments were all heard by MO Ruyue. At first, she didnt care much about this matter. She thought that it was just a devil who had appeared. As long as it didnt cause trouble here and threaten her friends and family, she had no interest in paying attention to this matter.
However, just as she was about to leave, she suddenly heard someone say, Although the authorities have been searching for the murderer and have not found any clues, I heard from the grapevine that there seems to be another identity behind the restaurant.
I heard that its a mysterious organization that has a long reputation in the martial world. They do all sorts of things behind the scenes, such as killing people and robbing goods. However, because their methods are too high and ruthless, almost no one dares to provoke that organization.
The cause of this disaster is entirely because someone in the organization suddenly defected. That person seems to have just joined not long ago. Help me. Anyway, the person who told me this was also very mysterious. I dont know if he was telling the truth.
MO Ruyue stopped in her tracks and stared at the person who had exposed the news.
His information seemed to be too detailed.
A man walked out of the teahouse, picking his teeth and humming a little tune. He seemed to be very rxed.
He quickly turned into an alley, and after a few steps, he suddenly turned back to look.
There was no one behind him. He shook his head in confusion, thinking that he was being too sensitive.
Just as he turned around and was about to continue walking, a ck shadow rushed toward his face, and the next second, he lost consciousness.
In a ruined temple on the outskirts of the city, a fire was burning on the ground, and a man was tied to a pir next to it.
His head was lowered as if he was still unconscious. There was a small pool of water under his feet, which was the saliva that had dripped from his mouth.
It was a blurry skeleton. The tied-up mans head moved as if he was about to wake up from hisa.
In a sh, the man raised his head. His eyes were still in a daze. It was obvious that he had just woken up from aa. Although his body was awake, his consciousness had not caught up.
With a hua sound, a basin of cold water was poured over the mans head. He instantly became a drenched chicken and couldnt help but cough.
The violent cough and the bone-piercing cold woke him up instantly. Although his eyes hurt from the water, he still tried to open one eye to see what had happened.
Since youre awake now, answer my questions properly. Who are you? What do you know about the serial explosion?
MO Ruyue threw away the bucket in her hand and asked the man tied to the pir.
She had been following the man since he left the teahouse, and she had also found out that he had deliberately wandered on the street before entering the alley. He knew that there would be people interested in the news he had released, and he had deliberately wanted to lure those interested in the news.
It was a pity that his scheme met with the ancestor of conspiracy, MO Ruyue. The trick he yed was also what she had yed before, so the oue that awaited him was to be knocked out and taken away..
Chapter 333 - 333: Killer Organization
Chapter 333: Killer Organization
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue had also thought that his aplices were secretly helping him, but she was not interested in capturing all of them in one fell swoop. As long as she caught this bait, the next one to take the bait might not necessarily be anyone.
You, Lady Qin, why did you catch me? Why did you bring me to such a ce?
Where was this ce? What are you trying to do?
The man looked at MO Ruyue in panic as if he was really a weakmoner. However, the calluses on his hands were clearly caused by people who used to hold weapons. They were different from the calluses caused by farming tools. If one didnt know the industry, they wouldnt be able to tell.
He asked a series of questions, but only received a cold smile from MO Ruyue.
Act. Continue acting.
What am I pretending about? Lady Qin, what are you talking about? I dont understand what youre saying.
The mans expression became even more innocent, and he kept struggling, trying to get rid of the hemp rope tied around his body.
With a dong sound, a cold light flew past and nailed straight to the pir next to the mans face.
It was a scalpel with a cold gleam. The cold de was close to the mans cheek, and only the airflow caused by the rapid speed cut his cheek. A shallow wound appeared, and then blood gushed out, mixing with the water droplets on his face and dripping down. Answer my question. I wont remind you next time.
MO Ruyue warned coldly.
It had been a long time since she had used the means of torture, and she didnt know if she could still control herself properly. It was best that this person didnt give her the opportunity to return to her old profession.
That man obviously didnt expect MO Ruyue to really hit him, so after he made a sound, a touch of resentment shed in his eyes.
This scene was coincidentally captured by MO Ruyue, and he couldnt help but sneer in his heart.
As expected, this persons goal was not simple.
She did not know who his target was, but she had a strange feeling that she seemed to be one of his targets.
Lady Qin, I really dont know what youre talking about. Can you give me a little hint? At least let me know what f should answer you.
He finally stopped being stubborn, but changed to another kind of roundabout way of saying things.
Teahouse. Some small news. MO Ruyue gave a brief reminder.
Oh, you mean that? But why do you pay so much attention to that gossip?
The man asked in confusion.
The next second, he let out a scream. A scalpel was stuck in his forearm, and blood gushed out. The pain made his forehead covered with cold sweat.
Say it again.
MO Ruyues hand flickered, and a few sharp scalpels appeared in her hand. She easily turned them into dazzling knife flowers.
It seemed that if the man didnt tell the truth, the scalpels would be inserted in different ces on his body.
The man had seen MO Ruyues ruthless and decisive side and knew that he would only suffer more if he dyed any longer. Moreover, the reinforcements he had been looking forward to hadnt arrived for a long time, and he didnt know what had happened.
Therefore, he chose to tell her the unimportant things so that she might not notice it.
Lady Qin, I heard that news from someone else. I have a brother who works in the government office of the neighboring city. The day before yesterday, when we were drinking together, I got the words out of his mouth when he was drunk. I dont know if its true or not, but I just said whatever I had heard from him.
After he finished speaking, his heart was hanging high up in the air. He stared nervously at MO Ruyue, afraid that she would throw another flying knife at him.
For a long time, MO Ruyue was only spinning the knife, as if she was already fascinated, and did not do anything else.
That man thought that his words had deceived MO Ruyue. His heart was just about to rx when he saw another cold light sh by. This time, his other arm and leg were hurt.
Half of the mans body was instantly dyed red with blood, especially the deep cut on his thigh. Blood almost spurted out far away.
If you want to die, Ill fulfill your wish.
MO Ruyue looked coldly at the man who looked like a bloody gourd, as if he really didnt care about his life or death.
Ill tell you, Lady Qin, I beg you to spare me. Ill tell you everything, I wont dare to hide anything!
The man couldnt care about anything else. If he didnt say it now, he would die from blood loss. If he said it, he would only die when he returned to the organization.
Who would be willing to die now if they could live a little longer?
Even though he was begging for mercy, MO Ruyue didnt react at all. She only walked up to him and pulled out the scalpel on his thigh when he saw that his face had turned pale and his eyes had lost focus.
The blood arrow shot out, spurting out even faster.
The tied-up mans face was covered with ayer of ck qi, and he was about to die.
When MO Ruyue pulled out the scalpel, she also covered the mans nose and mouth with a piece of white cloth, knocking him out. Then, he brought him into the medium.
She slowed down the flow of time and began to stop the bleeding and suture the man in the medical room.
Even if the mans thigh artery had been cut off by her, he would still have to ask for her permission to die in her medical space.
When the two of them returned to the real world, only an instant had passed in the outside world. It was as if they had just entered the space and then came out.
Half of the anesthetics effect had been used up in the medium, so the man let out a painful groan not long after the two of them appeared. With a moan, he slowly woke up.
He was still tied to the pir, but the bleeding on his thigh had stopped. The pain from the drugs effects came in waves, causing sweat to constantly form on his forehead, dripping down his cheeks.
Do you want to suffer the same pain again?
MO Ruyue saw his eyes turn around and then back to her. She kindly reminded him as she turned the scalpel in her hand.
No, no! Lady Qin, Ill tell you, Ill tell you everything!
The man had already realized that MO Ruyue was even more difficult to deal with than he had expected. The method of torture just now was not something that an ordinary woman could use. Moreover, looking at how she was doing it with ease, she should still have other cruel and effective means that she had not used.
He thought of the endless torture methods in the organization and couldnt help but shiver. No wonder he had a subtle sense of familiarity. When MO Ruyue stabbed him with the flying knife, he was just like those executioners, cold-blooded and cruel, and wouldnt stop until he got what he wanted.
So he simply surrendered. If MO Ruyue didnt kill him when the time came, he swore that he would never dare to provoke her again. He would also hide far away to the ends of the earth and start his journey of escape.
Mo Ruyue saw that he was lost in thought again as he spoke, and aplicated light shed in his eyes. He knew that he was still struggling between dying now or living a day longer.
She didnt rush him. She had enough patience to wait anyway.
Lady Qin, actually Im from a killer organization. Im only targeting you because someone in the organization implicated you..
Chapter 334 - 334: A Murderous Intent
Chapter 334: A Murderous Intent
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
As soon as the man said that, a mans shadow immediately appeared in MO Ruyues mind.
As expected, it was because of him!
She knew that there was no benefit in being rted to that person!
Seeing that MO Ruyues face had turned cold, the man immediately spoke faster, afraid that she would pick on him again and find another excuse to stab him. Lady Qin, although weve investigated your background before and know that you have a certain ability, our organization has dealt with countless more powerful and capable people, so we didnt put your ability in our eyes.
Who would have known that we would make such a huge mistake?
The man shook his head, looking regretful.
Get to the main point.
MO Ruyue urged again.
This man always went off topic as he spoke. It seemed like she should teach him how to get straight to the point.
Seeing MO Ruyues gaze on him again, the man sweated even more and quickly said, Although that person had just joined the organization, he quickly gained the tower masters favor and even wanted to pass the position to him. As a result, he incurred the dissatisfaction and jealousy of some people, who wanted to get rid of him.
In the process, we found out that he had a weakness, and the person he had the most interactions with was you.
So, you want to use me to threaten him? MO Ruyue said with certainty.
This was simply an ordinary method, so for people like them who were walking on the line between life and death every moment, having a weakness meant death.
However, even if she was the mans savior, she would not be his weakness. After all, after saving him twice, he had also given her a huge amount of money to repay her. Speaking of which, the two of them were even.
Lady Qin, actually, the news I just spread is true. Its about what happened in our organization. Because of you, that person became angry and directly turned against you.
The restaurant where the explosion happened is our organizations territory. Those people who wanted to kill you have been killed by that person. The tower master was also killed by him because he protected those people.
As for the victims in the explosion case, they were all involved in the n to harm you.
The man stopped and swallowed his saliva. He had already lost a lot of blood, and after saying so much, his mouth was dry and his tongue was weak.
MO Ruyue flicked his finger, and a ck light went straight to the mans face and directly fell into his mouth.
The thing melted in his mouth, and by the time the man reacted and wanted to spit it out, it had already turned into a pool of liquid, which he swallowed along with his saliva.
Qin Lady Qin, Ive already said it, but I havent finished yet. Are you going to kill me to silence me?
The man immediately became anxious.
Save your energy and continue, or youll die even faster. MO Ruyue threatened again.
At this moment, the food in his stomach began to take effect. A warm current emerged from his stomach and began to spread to his limbs and bones. Only then did he know that MO Ruyue had not given him poison to silence him, but something good to prolong his life.
Thank Thank you for not killing me, Lady Qjn.
He said gratefully. When he saw MO Ruyues impatient expression, he continued.
After this incident, our organizations vitality has been greatly damaged. However, the organization has been in operation for so many years. Its a big tree with deep roots. It cant be uprooted in one go. Therefore, the various means against you have never been withdrawn.
Were you the ones behind Imperial Doctor Tian and Madam Wangs matter? MO Ruyue immediately asked.
Yes, it was the organizations arrangement, but it was definitely not me! Im only responsible for spreading the news and luring you into the trap. When you want to capture me to ask for information, youll be caught by the people who have been lying in ambush in advance. I didnt expect that you wouldnt even give me a chance to pass before you captured me.
After the man had exined everything, he let out a long breath and said, Lady Qin, after I tell you this, the tissue fluid wont let me go. So if you cant kill me, please let me escape. I wont dare to have any thoughts of harming you.
Besides, if I still refuse toe to my senses, even if you dont kill me, Gu Ying wont let me go.
The mans words exploded in MO Ruyues mind. She grabbed his clothes and asked, What did you just say his name was?
The man was shocked by MO Ruyues excitement and was breathless from thepels. His originally pale face suddenly turned blue, red, and purple, and he looked like he was about to pass out.
Only then did MO Ruyue realize that she had overreacted. She quickly let go of her hand, but she still asked, Tell me, whats his name?
Cough, cough, hes called, cough, Gu Ying.
The man stuttered. As soon as the name came out, MO Ruyue could not hear anything else.
Gu Ying, hes called Gu Ying?
Could it really be such a coincidence?
Could it really be him?
One question after another shed through her mind. MO Ruyue couldnt help but recall the first time they met.
Thats right, no wonder she felt so familiar with him. No wonder she had been thinking about him recently. This was her subconscious telling her that Gu Ying was right beside her!
MO Ruyues heart was beating wildly. The deafening sound made her ears buzz. Even the blood in her body began to rush to her brain.
Her body swayed slightly, and she did not know whether she was happy or worried.
She was happy that her wish hade true. Gu Ying had really followed her into this world. After having a family that she never had, she could finally find the family that she had lost!
What worried her was that she did not recognize Gu Ying and had even chased him away from her time and time again. Now, Gu Ying was still fighting against a huge killer organization alone for her safety, but she waspletely unaware
This seemed to have happened in her previous life, but even after she was reborn, she did not stop it from happening again.
The tied-up man finally recovered and saw MO Ruyues dazed look, as if she had been frightened by Gu Yings name. But he didnt dare to make any wild guesses and could only suppress the itchiness in his throat. When he really couldnt hold it in, he would cough softly.
MO Ruyue quickly came back to her senses and realized that she had actually lost herposure in front of this man. This was equivalent to exposing the fact that Gu Ying was also her weak spot, so she had the intention to kill him.
Although the man was unlucky, he had been in the organization for a long time and was most sensitive to things like killing intent. He immediately realized that something was MO Ruyue probably thought that he had seen something he shouldnt have and really wanted to kill him to silence him.
Lady Qin, I didnt see anything just now. Please spare me! He shouted anxiously.
As soon as he finished speaking, he was so vexed that he wanted to p himself. wasnt it just trying to cover up? She might as well just tell MO Ruyue that he saw everything!
No, how about this? You can poison my throat and cripple my fingers so that I cant say or write anything.. Then you wont be worried that Ill reveal anything that I shouldnt, right?
Chapter 335 - 335: Concern makes you confused
Chapter 335: Concern makes you confused
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Although his suggestion was not as good as directly killing him to save time, it also reminded MO Ruyue.
She reached into her clothes and took out a syringe.
The medicine there was specially concocted by her. It would destroy part of the brains nerve tissue and couldpletely erase the memories of the past few
It was just that this thing had just been made not long ago and had not been tested on human bodies. She could not guarantee that there would be any residual effects, but she could only say that it would not kill people.
However, she wouldnt think too much about a person who had participated in framing her. It was already a great honor from his ancestors that he was spared.
As for whether he could survive in the end, it would depend on whether he could escape the pursuit of that organization.
MO Ruyue did not hesitate to inject the syringe into the mans neck and pushed all the medicine in it. She watched as he red at her with bulging eyes before he finally fainted.
She put him back into her interspace, preparing to find a ce to throw him out after she left the county. Since he would end up running for his life anyway, she might as well send him on his way first.
It was easy to clean up the traces in the ruined temple. For the blood sttered on the ground, some chemicals could be used to remove it, and some deodorizers could be sprayed to cover it up for a longer time.
MO Ruyue had carefully cleaned up the scene and erased all traces. Perhaps there were still some experts in the organization who could find some clues, but if they wanted to find her and use her to threaten or cause trouble, their n was bound to fail.
When she finally walked out of the ruined temple, she cleaned up her footprints onest time. After walking for a long distance, she quickly left the ce.
Now that she knew about Gu Ying, MO Ruyue wished she could grow a pair of wings and fly to his side. She had to personally confirm if he was her Gu Ying and if he still had an impression of her in her previous life.
Now that both of them had been reincarnated, their appearances were different from their previous lives, so it was understandable that they did not recognize each other. However, if she could have a familiar feeling towards him, then he might be the same as her.
But before that, MO Ruyue had a more important thing to do.
Mother, you asked us to pack up in such a hurry, whats going on?
Da Bao asked MO Ruyue as he packed his things.
Not long ago, her mother had rushed back home and started to ask them to pack their things. She said that she would immediately move into the city to live for a while, and she even wanted to bring Grandpa Liu and Grandma Liu along.
Although his younger siblings looked extremely excited, Da Bao knew that something must have happened.
You guys go first. Things are a littleplicated, but Ill slowly exin it to you in the future.
It would take a long time to say this, and now was not the right time, so MO Ruyue only urged him to quickly pack his things and prepare to leave.
She had to find Gu Ying, but that organization was a centipede and had not beenpletely exterminated. Therefore, she could not leave her weakness out and give others the opportunity to hurt them.
What MO Ruyue could think of was to send the children to the Bai manor. No matter how arrogant that organization was, they would still have things they were afraid of. She could only hope that the Bai manor was one of the forces that they would be afraid of.
Soon, the children were all packed up. The Liu couple also waited at the door with their bags in the carriage.
MO Ruyue also got on the carriage. She wanted to personally escort them there and exin things to Bai Jinshang.
She was likely to get Bai Jinshang involved in this, but there was no time for her to think of other ways. Only when she saw that the babies were safe and sound could she set out to find Gu Ying.
The carriage continued on its way to the county. MO Ruyues expression was particrly serious. She didnt know how long it would take her to find Gu Ying, but the only thing she was sure of was that she would not give up until she found him!
Master Bai, thats what happened. I know that I might bring unnecessary trouble to you if I juste to you and entrust the children to you, but I dont have a better candidate at the moment, so I can only shamelessly ask for your
MO Ruyue exined everything that had happened, and then solemnly reiterated the possible danger to Bai Jinshang.
Bai Jinshang smiled and said indifferently, Lady Qin, I was still wondering what matter made you so worried. So it was this matter. Dont worry, just leave the children in my Bai manor. Not only will there be enough space for them to settle down, but it will also be safe enough.
I, Bai Jinshang, might not dare to boast about other things, but you can rest assured about this matter. No matter what kind of great assassin organization it is, they will not dare toe to my Bai manor.
When he spoke, there was only a domineering aura. At this time, he was no longer a low-key and kind old man. The aura of a superior that was faintly emitted from his body confirmed MO Ruyues previous judgment of him. No matter why the Bai family was hiding their strength and biding their time, the background of this family was unfathomable.
Since thats the case, Ill thank Master Bai in advance. Ill prepare to head to the cities where the murders have taken ce and see if I can find the person Im looking for.
MO Ruyue also knew that her aimless search was like looking for a needle in a haystack, but there was no better way now. After all, that organizations restaurants were almost all over the country, so there was no way to judge where Gu Ying would appear next.
Lady Qin, I have an idea. I dont know if you are willing to listen. Bai Jinshang saw that MO Ruyue was about to leave and immediately said to her, Please go ahead, Master Bai.
MO Ruyue was originally prepared to go and see the babies again and give them some advice. When she heard Bai Jinshangs words, she stopped. He didnt mind saying one or two more words.
I feel that Lady Qin is now in a state of chaos because of concern, so when she suddenly heard that an old friend had an ident, it is inevitable that she would be anxious to help. But if you try your luck without any clues, youll only waste more time.
Shes my wifes best friend. Shes the head of the countysrgest intelligence organization. As long as she says a word, her husband will follow it. Lady Qin, why dont you try and see if shes willing to help?
His suggestion made MO Ruyues eyes light up. Since there was such a rtionship, he naturally had to make use of it.
The women of the head of the intelligence organization were Madam Bai l s best friends. As expected, even these womens identities were not simple.
MO Ruyue immediately epted this suggestion and immediately went to Madam Bais room.
Lady Qin, since its your problem, Ill definitely do my best to help. Ill talk to
Youwei. You just have to wait here for the news.
When Madam Bai heard about this, she also agreed without hesitation. However, when MO Ruyue heard that she had to wait here for news, she immediately shook her head and refused.
No, it would be too insincere if I wait here. Ill go with you.
Theres no need, Lady Qin. I didnt make myself clear just now. Only I can tell Youwei about this in private. If you really follow her, it might have the opposite effect.
With Madam Bais exnation, MO Ruyue didnt insist.
There might be some secrets involved in this, and as an outsider, it would have? the opposite effect..
Chapter 336 - 336: A Person With A Story
Chapter 336: A Person With A Story
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Theres one more thing I need to make clear. Madam Qin, you might have to wait a little longer. I need more time to discuss this matter with Youwei.
MO Ruyue naturally agreed immediately, but she also added, Madam Bai, please tell your best friend that as long as she is willing to help, if she needs my help in the future, I will also do my best to help.
Her favor was not something that anyone could get. Only those who truly understood her ability would know how heavy this promise was.
Madam Bai didnt waste any time. Her close friends were all living in the Bai manor and would only return home after the Lantern Festival.
Although everyone was the matriarch of their own family, it was not right for them to not be at home on a new years day. However, they had gathered from all over the world to see Madam Bai for thest time because they had heard that she was dying. So, even if the oue was different from before, they still had to see her.
MO Ruyue did not wait in the room for nothing. Instead, she greeted Madam Bai l s maidservants and immediately went to Bai Shijiaos courtyard.
She did not know how long she would be gone for. Madam Bais condition had stabilized and she could stop the treatment process temporarily. However, Bai Shijiaos weight loss might rebound because of the interruption.
Since he had already epted this patient, of course he couldnt let her be affected by his personal affairs. Besides, there was still Zhu Zhu!
What? Lady Qin, youre going to be gone for so long!
When Bai Shijiao heard this news, she jumped from the bed to the ground in shock. She was only slightly chubby now, not as bloated and unhealthy as before. All of this was the effect of MO Ruyues systematic adjustment of her treatment.
Now that she said that she would be away for a while, how could Bai Shijiao not be shocked?
Yes, I have something I must do, so I must go.
MO Ruyue didnt tell her the specific reason and only simply said that he was leaving. Then he warned her, This period of time isnt a bottleneck for you, but its still very important. You need to control your diet and exercise on your own. I think you should be able to do it after you see the effect.
Well, I can actually control it, but what about Zhu Zhu? Shes only been receiving treatment for a short while. If you leave, wont her treatment be interrupted?
Its just that the acupuncture will break. I will write down everything she needs to do, and then I will teach a set of massage techniques directly to her maidservant. As long as she perseveres it every day, its not a big problem, but the speed will be a little slower.
Of course, I can also choose to use medicine, but medicine is 30% poisonous.
It will definitely affect her body. If it is not necessary, I will not use it easily. When MO Ruyue said this, she paused slightly and added, I will also write a prescription for your mother, in case Zhu Zhu cant control herself and breaks the taboo, causing a bacsh. There is still a remedy measure, but in the end, it still depends on your own self-awareness.
She had already said so much. If they still didnt listen, it wouldnt be her responsibility.
Madam Bai had brought back good news. Her best friend, Ye Youwei, had agreed to help, but she also needed time to gather information. She had also epted a big favor from MO Ruyue.
Please tell Lady Qin that I ept this favor. As for when I need to ask for it, I will naturally send someone to her.
After Madam Bai passed on the message, she looked at MO Ruyue carefully, as if she was afraid that she would arouse her disgust.
MO Ruyue only nodded with a calm expression. Of course, MO Ruyue said.
Since I still have to wait, Ill continue todays treatment.
Even though she was the one who suggested it, Madam Bai shook her head. Lady Qin, I heard you say before that my body has almost recovered. I need more rest and recuperate. I especially need to pay attention to not have big fluctuations in my mood.
So I was thinking, if you have any way, perhaps you can put an end to my treatment.
Madam Bai had taken the initiative to make this suggestion. In fact, it had also reduced MO Ruyues burden so that she could focus on her own things and not be distracted by other things.
Even if you want to end the treatment, there will be a slow process. Madam Bai, your body is already used to my acupuncture to help you recover. It wont do you any good to stop all of a sudden.
Ill adjust the prescription for your body and increase the dosage a little, so that your body will have the feeling that youre still receiving acupuncture treatment. Then, as the dosage gradually decreases, this process of adaptation will bepleted.
However, the medicine is 30% poisonous. You cant take these prescriptions for a long time, so you must stop using even the lowest dosage after a month.
Do you understand?
Ill remember it, but does Lady Qin need as long as a month?
Madam Bai asked in surprise.
If things dont go well, Ille back once before and after the Lantern Festival. After all, the babies new academies should be settled soon, and their studies cant be dyed. After that, Ill leave again and continue to look for him. No matter what, I must find him! MO Ruyue said without hesitation. Since she knew that Gu Ying had alsoe to this world, there was nothing that could stop them from reuniting again. So even if he was at the end of the world, she would definitely go.
It was the first time Madam Bai had seen such an expression on MO Ruyues face. She couldnt help but think of her younger days. She was once a person with a story.
It was a past that could only be relived in her memories.
After giving Madam Bai the prescription, all that was left was to wait for Ye Youweis news. MO Ruyue could finally make use of this time to go to the courtyard where the babies were staying and exin to them what exactly had happened.
Bai Jinshang had arranged for them to stay in the center of the Bai manor. It was also an independent courtyard, but it was surrounded and protected by the surrounding courtyards. Obviously, it was much safer.
MO Ruyue was very satisfied with this arrangement. Of course, she also remembered this favor. No matter what kind of trouble the Bai manor encountered in the future, she would not retreat and would do her best to help.
After the babies entered the Bai manor and were arranged to stay in this courtyard, they had been waiting for MO Ruyue in the room. The Liu couple were in the room next door. Although they also didnt know what had happened, they chose to wait for MO Ruyues exnation out of trust.
Big Brother, what do you think happened to Mother? No matter what happened in the past, she has never been as nervous as she is today. Do you think something big has happened?
Er Bao sat beside Da Bao and whispered into his ear.
His three younger siblings were sitting side by side on the threshold, their hands supporting their cheeks as they looked at the half-closed gate, waiting for their mother to appear.
He had just consoled them, so he didnt want them to hear his conversation with his big brother..
Chapter 337 - 337: A Powerful Ally
Chapter 337: A Powerful Ally
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Dont make wild guesses. Mother must have her reasons for doing this. Although we cant help Mother, at least we can make her not worry.
Although Da Bao was also full of worries and questions, he had to take on the responsibility as an elder brother now. If something serious had not happened, his mother would never have entrusted them to someone else to protect.
He only hated himself for being still young and not very capable. He couldnt stay by his mothers side and help her, so he could only take good care of his younger siblings.
Mother!
Mother, youre back!
Mother!
The babies sitting on the threshold suddenly stood up and rushed out with joy. Da Bao and his brother also got up. Sure enough, they saw MO Ruyue walking in from the entrance of the courtyard.
Im sorry Imte. Youve been waiting anxiously.
MO Ruyue held the three babies in her arms and reached out to the brothers, Da Bao and Er Bao, who were following behind her. However, only Er Bao ran over without hesitation, while Da Bao slowly followed behind and stopped when he was one step away from her.
Mother, are you preparing to leave?
Er Baos words made MO Ruyues heart ache. She knew that he was the most sensitive among all the babies, but he had to act like an elder brother, so he couldnt act coquettishly, nor could he show anxiety and panic.
He was forcing himself to be an adult who exceeded his actual age!
Yes, Ill leave after I get the information I want.
Even though she felt pain and reluctance in her heart, MO Ruyue still chose to tell him the truth.
The babies were her family in this world, and Gu Ying was her family in both her previous and current lives. No matter who it was, she would not give up. Mother, dont worry. Ill take good care of my younger siblings.
Da Bao had said the same thing more than once, but there seemed to be something more to his tone this time.
Yes. This time, Mother is going to find someone who is extremely important to Mother. After finding him, I wille back. It may take a little long, but I will definitelye back before the Lantern Festival. In addition to apanying you on the festival, I will also arrange for your new academy.
Although IMO Ruyue couldnt tell the babies the specific reason, she would tell them her next n. This way, the babies would have something to look forward to, and the waiting days wouldnt be so difficult.
The babies listened attentively, unlike before when they fought to speak and ask questions. They just listened quietly and looked at her eagerly, as if she would disappear if they blinked.
MO Ruyue felt very ufortable when she saw this scene. She suddenly felt that her decision seemed a little cruel.
However, when she thought about her and Gu Yings past, and that he might also be looking for her, she could no longer hold back.
Im sorry, my babies. Just let Mother be willful this once.
It only took two nights for Ye Youwei to bring IMO Ruyue the news she wanted.
Lady Qin, I have to say that the person you are looking for is a rare talent. My husband has already sent out the most elite spies under hismand, but they still cant find any clues about him. However, ording to some information fragments you provided, they still locked onto three cities.
She pointed at the three cities that had already been marked out. They were Xu City, which was two hundred miles away from here, yang city, which was one hundred and fifty miles away from Xu City, and Lin City, which was one hundred miles away from Ping City.
Of the three cities, Yang City was no longer under the jurisdiction of the prefecture, while the other two were under the jurisdiction of the magistrate, Duanmu Xize.
Currently, the cities where the murders had taken ce were scattered in several different manors, the furthest one being nearly a thousand miles away from each other. No one knew how the murderer had been able to travel a distance of a thousand miles in a few days, and then calmly leave aftermitting these murders.
Some said that the murderer could travel thousands of miles in a day by shrinking the distance. Some said that the murderer was not alone and had other aplices. Some even said that the murderer was the soul reaper from the King of Hells Pce. The victims of those bloody cases were all heinous viins and should have been killed long ago.
There were all sorts of different statements, casting a mysterious shadow over the already terrifying murder case.
The three cities that Ye Youwei had circled out werent far from the furthest one, but even so, it would still take a long time to cover a distance of hundreds of miles.
Alright, Ill be leaving then.
MO Ruyue raised her hand and was about to take the map away, but Ye Youwei unexpectedly pulled the map back, causing her to miss.
Lady Qin is really an impatient person. I havent finished speaking, you dont need to be in a hurry, right?
Ye Youwei smiled and pointed at the chair beside the table, indicating for MO Ruyue to sit down and talk.
MO Ruyue wasnt in the mood to chat with anyone at all, but for the sake of Ye Youweis information, she sat down patiently and was ready to hear what she had to say.
Lady Qin, no matter what reason your friend has, the crime hemitted is not an ordinary murder case. Now, a total of three prefects have issued arrest warrants. Have you ever thought about what you will do after you find him?
Of course, with his ability, he can indeed hide and never appear in front of others. But as long as he appears by your side, wont those fish that have escaped the point their fingers at you again, and then implicate you and your child?
Ye Youwei analyzed carefully and saw that MO Ruyues expression started to turn serious.
Lady Qin, I dont think your friend will stop until he uproots this organization, but there are so many people, he cant catch all of them in one fell swoop. As long as there is one person who is still out there, your friend will never be able to appear in public, especially by your side.
Although I dont want to inquire about your private affairs, but that person is obviously very important to you, right?
When she spoke, her attitude was gentle and restrained. There was no overbearing feeling, and she did not make people feel offended. It was obvious that she was very good at talking.
Do you have any good suggestions?
MO Ruyue didnt answer her question directly, but Ye Youwei had already gotten the answer she wanted.
Other than herte husband, a wife also had a blue confidant. This Lady Qin was really very interesting and made people want to. She was an unstoppable person!
Even though Ye Youweis interest in MO Ruyue had increased by a few levels, she still maintained an appropriate smile and responded to the question.
If I can get the help of a powerful ally, those things just now wont be a problem. What do you think, Lady Qin?
Hearing this, MO Ruyue realized that Ye Youwei wanted to poach Gu Ying after discovering his powerful abilities. No wonder Ye Youwei agreed so readily and gave him the information so quickly. Such a gesture of goodwill was indeed hard to refuse.
When Gu Ying first joined the blood tower, Im afraid that the tower master also said the same thing.
Of course, she didnt want Gu Ying to return to that kind of life. Since she could return to the sunlight, so could he.
Lady Qin, I think youve misunderstood. I dont want him to join, but just want an ally. This is not a subordinate rtionship, but an equal rtionship. Its just like how youll help me when I need help, but only when its necessary.
Ye Youwei exined patiently. She believed that these words would be enough for MO Ruyue to weigh the pros and cons..
Chapter 338 - 338: Bless Lady Qin To Return Safely
Chapter 338: Bless Lady Qin To Return Safely
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
So, Mrs. Xiao, you mean that as long as Gu Ying is willing to form an alliance with you and provide a little help when necessary, you will help him settle this matter? As you just said, this is no ordinary murder case. It has already rmed three state capitals, and the scope of its influence will continue to expand.
MO Ruyue wanted to see what kind of n Ye Youwei coulde up with to prove her sincerity. If possible, she could even make this deal on behalf of Gu Ying.
Lady Qin should be very clear about what kind of existence my husbands intelligence organization is. Speaking of which, it can be considered as a sworn enemy of the blood tower. There is still a lot of evidence in her hands.
Moreover, it is not difficult for us to clear our identities and the like.
The most important thing is that we have a lot of people. Even if a hundred pigs run out, it will take time to catch all of them. But wouldnt it be easier with more people? Our cooperation will only bring you benefits and no harm. This should be the most tempting condition for you.
It had to be said that Ye Youweis words had hit the nail on the head.
She had been reborn into an ordinary mountain vige family. With her abilities, even if she didnt do the business she used to do, she could still live a good life. But Gu Ying was not.
She didnt know what had happened to him, but he must have his reasons for choosing to walk the same path.
What MO Ruyue wanted to do the most right now was to let Gu Ying be like her, to be able to live under the sun with a proper identity. So when Ye Youwei said that her identity was cleared, it made her particrly tempted.
What do you want me to do, Mrs. Xiao? MO Ruyue pondered for a while and chose to ept Ye Youweis conditions.
She wasnt afraid that she would kill the donkey after it had stopped grinding. Whether it was her or Gu Ying, even if they were alone, they could still make them pay the price, let alone if they worked together. Ye Youwei would understand this more clearly in the future.
Its very simple. When Lady Qin goes to find your friend, you can bring my familys token. This way, you can mobilize the hidden forces in various ces to help you. After its done, just let your friend ept this.
Ye Youwei said as she pushed two small boxes over from the table.
There were two different-colored thumb rings in the two boxes. One was suet jade, and the other was Emerald.
There was a Xiao character engraved on the ring, which was obviously the surname of Ye Youweis husband.
I realized that as long as its a decent family, they seem to like to use Jade as a token.
MO Ruyue had already received jade tokens from Imperial Doctor Tian, Duanmu Xize, Bai Jinshang, and the others. Now, Ye Youwei had given her another one, and it was two thumb rings. That was why she was so emotional.
Jade is the most noble of all artifacts, so this is the best choice as an essory. Some families will also choose waist tokens made of wood, bronze, or iron. This depends on the wealth and preferences of the family.
Ye Youwei pointed at the emerald ring and said, This is a ring that only our Xiao familys distinguished guests can use. Only when the temperature is raised after wearing it will the blood-red words be revealed. As long as that Mr. Gu Ying wears it, the people in the organization will naturally recognize it.
This suet jade is a temporary token of authority. It can allow you to mobilize the Xiao familys forces in various ces for a month. Unless you are someone we trust very much, you will not be able to get this ring.
I hope that Lady Qin can properly keep these two tokens. If they were lost and fell into someone elses hands, it would be a disaster for our Xiao family.
Ye Youweis expression became extremely serious as she spoke.
She had already shown the greatest sincerity that the Xiao family could give. It was obvious that the importance she attached to MO Ruyue and Gu Ying was not ordinary.
Alright, Ill ept it then. Thank you for your help, Madam Xiao.
MO Ruyue epted the two boxes without hesitation. With such help in her hands, there would be much less trouble in the future. Naturally, she would not give up and not use them.
Then I wish us a happy cooperation. I also hope that Lady Qins trip will be smooth and you can find your important partner.
Ye Youwei stood up and ended the conversation.
After the time it took to brew a cup of tea, MO Ruyue left the Bai manor with the big ck horse. After she quickly left the city, she immediately mounted the horse and left.
When she left, she didnt deliberately say goodbye to the babies. No matter how many times she had been through this, she still couldnt get used to parting, especially now. She had to go to an appointment that she had to go to, so she didnt want to say goodbye to them.
At the same time, the babies who were studying in the courtyard seemed to have sensed something. They put down their brushes at the same time and looked outside.
Big brother, has Mother already left?
San Bao looked at Da Bao and rubbed his chest a few times. Why does my chest feel so stuffy and empty? Its so ufortable.
Me too,
San Bao furrowed his brows and rubbed his chest as well.
Tang Tang didnt say anything. She just lowered her head and looked at the book, but bean-sized water droplets kept dripping down, staining the paper with a watermark.
Mother probably didnt want us to be sad, so she left quietly. This doesnt mean that she doesnt care about us. What we can do now is not to let Mother worry. When she is done with her own matters, she wille back.
Wasnt it like this every time before?
Da Bao felt the same way as his younger siblings. They could clearly sense that their mother had left, but they didnt have time to be sad. Instead, they had to follow their mothers instructions and learn their skills well so that she wouldnt have to worry about her family when she was outside. This was what they should do the most.
Outside the door, Aunt Liu nodded slightly to Uncle Liu, indicating that the two of them could leave.
They had received the news that MO Ruyue had left and wanted toe over to see how the babies were doing. They had thought that they might have to persuade and apany them for a while, but now it seemed that there was no need.
The two of them quietly returned to their own rooms, and only then did they look at each other and sigh.
They had long realized that MO Ruyue was not an ordinary person, but they didnt expect her to be involved in an even more dangerous matter. If it wasnt for the emergency, with her ability, why would she entrust the babies to someone else and even involve them?
This meant that they were just like the babies, bing one of MO Ruyues weak spots.
The couple was both happy and worried about this result. They were happy that they could still be someone elses important family in the end of their lives, and this was something they had always hoped for in their hearts but could not say.
He was worried that he didnt know how much trouble MO Ruyue had gotten herself into this time and whether she could return safely.
Otherwise, Ill pray to the heavens every day to bless Lady Qins safe return.
After a long time, Aunt Liu finally said this. Uncle Liu, on the other hand, remained silent.
After MO Ruyue left the city, she did not choose to go to Xu City, which was the closest to her. Instead, she nned to go to Ping City first, and then make a turn to Lin City, which was a hundred miles away from Ping City.
From the route and timeline of the cities where the incident had urred, there seemed to be no regr pattern to speak of. But for MO Ruyue, she could see some clues.
They had always followed the principle of capturing the leader first. They would take down the biggest threat from the start, and then slowly take care of the ones below..
Chapter 339 - 339: Lingering Fear
Chapter 339: Lingering Fear
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Right now, that was indeed what Gu Ying was doing. As soon as he arrived, he directly destroyed the blood towersir, causing this organization to be without a leader. In a short period of time, they would be unable to organize an effective counterattack. Then, after the other party reacted, he continued to eliminate the newmander.
That was why he seemed to be wandering aimlessly on the route. Today, he hadmitted a crime in the nearest city, and two dayster, he had appeared thousands of miles away.
The distance between Xu City and Lin City was the same, but MO Ruyue had a feeling that Gu Ying should be in Lin City.
The first murder case happened in an unknown small town, about the size of a county. However, no one would have thought that such a small town would actually be their of a huge organization like the blood tower.
Following that, there were murders in cities of all sizes. They were almost all arranged ording to the rule of small and big. Among the three cities, Sun City was thergest and Forest City was the smallest, so MO Ruyues eyes were cast here at the first moment.
With the big ck horse around, it only took a few hours to travel from the county to Ping City. However, MO Ruyue did not n to settle down in Ping
City. She merely stood on a small hill ten miles outside the city and looked at Ping City from afar.
If Duanmu Xize knew that she hade to Ping City, he would definitely send someone to keep an eye on her. At that time, she would be bringing danger to Gu Ying. How could she make such a low-level mistake?
MO Ruyue carefully listened to the movements around her to make sure that no one was following her. Then, she turned her horse around and set off for Lin
Lin City was only a hundred miles away from Yueyang Prefectures capital, Ping City. However, because it was located in a small basin surrounded by mountains, there was only one road leading to the outside world. Therefore, the scale of the city was notrge, and it was not prosperous.
The pace of life of the people in the city was also very slow, and they seemed to have a feeling of being aloof from the world. The surrounding scenery was very beautiful, which made MO Ruyue think of an article called the Peach Blossom Land that she had read before.
The Peach Blossom Land was also located in a valley, and there was only one small path that was connected to the outside world. The people inside were content and happy, and they lived a quiet and peaceful life. Everyone looked very happy.
However, Forest City was different. The road leading to the outside world had an eye-catching mark, and the city peoples indifference to the world seemed more like a kind of helplessness and resignation to fate after a fruitless struggle.
MO Ruyues appearance did not attract too much attention. She was wearing a bamboo hat that covered her face and was dressed in mens clothes. She looked like a swordsman who was walking in the rivers andkes. However, the big ck horse she was leading attracted many peoples attention. After all, such a handsome horse was notmon here.
She went directly to the building with the sign of Xiangyun Restaurant, tied the big ck horse to the horse-tying post in front of the door, and then prepared to walk in.
Young Man, youre from outside, right? We cant stay in this restaurant.
Theres an inn not far ahead. Lets go there!
There was a grocery store diagonally opposite the restaurant. The shopkeeper inside had already had his eyes on MO Ruyue when she walked over. Seeing that she was going to go in to stay, he immediately came out to dissuade her. Isnt this restaurant open for business? Why cant I stay here?
MO Ruyue had used medicine to change her voice in advance, so she sounded like a young man.
Well, you dont know, but this restaurant also exists in other cities. I dont know who it offended, but seven or eight bloody cases have happened in session, and all the people inside have died. How unlucky!
The shopkeeper came over and whispered, his eyes couldnt help but look into the half-closed door of the restaurant.
In the past, I found it strange. Even the inns in this small ce are rarely full, but such a big restaurant has opened here, and there is not even a single person to be seen every day. It has been open for several years, and the shop has not closed down. I dont know what the shopkeeper is nning.
He continued to ramble on and told them some more information about the restaurant.
In fact, he was just trying to find something to talk about. He always felt that this young man had a very good cold fragrance on him. It was refreshing, and once he smelled it, he felt that his whole mind was a lot clearer.
He knew that many rich young masters liked to wear incense and make it smell nice. It seemed that the young man in front of him had a good family background. Otherwise, how could he afford such elegant incense and hold such a handsome horse?
It would be great if he coulde to his grocery store to take care of the business, even if it was just to buy two small things.
The shopkeeper didnt notice that he was already distracted. His body was still unconsciously leaning towards MO Ruyue.
Thank you for telling me, but I dont mind. As long as I live well, it doesnt matter.
MO Ruyue hade to this restaurant in the first ce, so she naturally wouldnt back out just because of the managers words.
Young Man, do you not want to live well? If you want to livefortably, its the same at my house. Theres a separate courtyard and servants to serve you. Isnt it better than going to that unlucky restaurant?
The shopkeeper didnt know what was wrong with him, but he just wanted to stay with this young man for a while longer. The fragrance on his body was really too tempting, making people feel a kind of desire. This was the first time he had such a feeling.
MO Ruyues face sank. This time, she was toozy to even reply.
She couldnt stop such a lecher in her mens clothes, which was the most unlucky thing. Now he better not provoke her again, otherwise she couldnt guarantee what she would do.
It was just that the shopkeeper seemed to be in a daze. Seeing that MO Ruyue was ignoring him, he didnt know where his daze came from, but he directly reached out to grab MO Ruyues hand, wanting to make her stay.
Just as their hands were about to touch, MO Ruyues hand moved as fast as lightning. She suddenly grabbed the shopkeepers wrist and twisted it behind his back. A cry of pain escaped his mouth. The pain of his wrist almost breaking made the shopkeepere to his senses.
Since youve given me some useful information, Ill let you off this time. If you still dont know what shame is, dont me me for crippling you.
MO Ruyue said coldly. When she saw the shopkeeper sweating profusely from the pain, he hurriedly nodded. Only then did he release his hand and push him forward.
The moment the shopkeeper regained his freedom, he immediately ran to his grocery store.
He didnt dare to have any other thoughts now. Fortunately, there werent many people in the city, and it was just past noon. There were only two or three pedestrians on the street, and no one had noticed what had just happened.
If people knew that he had feelings for a man that he shouldnt have, he wouldnt be able to stay in this city.
Once he thought of the consequences, he felt a wave of fear. He only wished that he could hide far away and not meet that terrifying young man again.
MO Ruyue then walked up the steps and pushed open the half-closed door. The door shaft had not been oiled for a long time, and it made an ear-piercing squeak, breaking the afternoon silence.
The sunlight that shone through the door cast down countless tiny light pirs, and when they gathered together, they became a few rtivelyrger light pirs. The dust particles in the air swirled and danced because of the airflow. MO Ruyue could even hear the sound of the dust particles colliding with each other.
There was no one behind the counter of the hotel, and there was no trace of the waiter in the lobby. The entire restaurant was filled with a rotten smell. Other than the fact that there were no cobwebs, there was no trace of a living person at all.
Even without the series of murders at Lucky Inn, this inns business was destined to bepletely lost. This ce was probably just amunication station, and it didnt matter how many business deals it could make..
Chapter 340 - 340: One Step Into The Gates Of Hell
Chapter 340: One Step Into The Gates Of Hell
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Is anyone there? I want to stay at the hotel.
MO Ruyue stood in the middle of the hall and walked around, then asked loudly.
Her voice even echoed in the restaurant, but other than that, there was no other sound.
Could it be that the people in the building were afraid of something happening and had already moved away?
Mo Ruyue thought of this possibility. However, ording to Gu Yings ability, even if these people wanted to hide, they had to see if they could hide.
Is there anyone? Im going upstairs. MO Ruyue asked again.
Even if there was no one around, she would still stay. Whether Gu Ying was the first or thest to arrive in Lin City, as long as she didnt leave, they would definitely meet.
Sir, our restaurant is closed. Please go to another one.
Someone on the second floor suddenly stuck his head out and said to MO Ruyue, then prepared to turn back.
The environment of other restaurants isnt good, but isnt your restaurant a house? Its the new year now, so it shouldnt be difficult to spare a room for me.
MO Ruyue said as she took out a silver ingot and pped it on the table.
The man poked his head out again. This time, he looked at her carefully for a while andughed. This customer, do you think our restaurant is in need of money?
He didnt even want to hide it now. He only hoped to get rid of MO Ruyue as soon as possible.
If you want to close the business, the gate should not be open, and you should hang a closed sign. But since you have opened the door, you should wee the guests. How can you push the guests who havee to your door away?
As MO Ruyue spoke, she took down the overturned stool on the table beside him. Then, he sat on it, ignoring theyer of dust on it.
She leaned back against the table and saw the person standing on the second floor.
Although he had a goatee, his eyes were extremely clear. He looked young, about the same age as her body.
That pair of eyes were very lively, and although they were also constantly rolling around, it did not make people feel disgusted.
He should have ADHD and be a quick-witted person. This was MO Ruyues first instinct after meeting him.
I say, why do you insist on this restaurant? Although the interior is magnificently decorated and the rooms inside are indeed veryfortable, theres no one to serve you in the kitchen, lobby, or guest rooms. Do you want to cook and get water by yourself?
If you want to work, we wont pay you.
MO Ruyue was wearing a bamboo hat with a curtain, so that person couldnt see her face clearly. But judging from her figure, clothes, and temperament, she should be the young master of that family who hade out to y alone.
However, he didnt have a servant by his side to serve him. If he missed his lodging in the wilderness, he didnt know where to find someone to serve him.
That was why he deliberately made things difficult for this strange customer. He wanted to see if he would be scared away.
i l just want a ce to stay at night. As for whether I need to be served, you dont have to worry about that.
MO Ruyue had already said this. If that person wasnt a fool, he should know that her most stable intention was not to drink. However, although he didnt stop her this time, his reaction was very unusual and he didnt ask her for her true purpose.
Alright, since you insist on staying, then dont me me for not giving you a heads up.
After the man finished speaking, he pointed to the counter and said, The room fee is ten taels of silver per night. The room keys are behind the counter. You can choose from the rooms below the fourth floor, but you are absolutely not allowed toe up to the fifth floor. Otherwise, if anything happens, I cant guarantee your life.
After saying that, the man turned around and left. This time, he did not look back at all.
MO Ruyue did as she was told and threw the ten taels of silver on the counter. Then, she began to pick up the door key.
Since that person said that she absolutely shouldnt go up to the fifth floor, she would choose the fourth floor. As for the room, she had already thought of it long ago. It was the second room facing the street.
That room had a wide view and could have a panoramic view of the entire street outside. There was also an arched roof below, which was very suitable for people to stay in at night.
See, shes not only convenient for herself, but also for others. Shes even considered the opportunity for others to peek at her so thoroughly.
MO Ruyue was now using herself as bait. Although she had changed her appearance and voice, her actions just now must have attracted the attention of the people in this restaurant.
This was the effect she wanted. As long as these people took the bait, she would be able to find out more.
After MO Ruyue entered Room 402, a figure immediately shed across the room and nimbly jumped up to the fifth floor from the outer fence.
Hended without a sound because he didnt take the stairs, so he wouldnt attract MO Ruyues attention.
The room he went to was at the head of the fifth floor, near the end of the street. It could be said that MO Ruyues room on the fourth floor was on the opposite end of the floor.
The man was obviously very cautious. Even though he had climbed up from the outer fence, he had nimbly jumped over the fence and moved forward, his feet not leaving any sound on the ground.
He quickly stopped outside the room at the end of the corridor and whispered through the door, That person is staying in Room 402, and itspletely silent after he went in. I dont know what hes doing.
Is he Gu Ying in disguise? That brat has a thousand faces and is hard to guard against. Hes even more of a headache than the Thousand Transformations
Lord.
An extremely hoarse voice came from inside the room. The voice revealed a trace of doubt and fear that could not be hidden. causing the people outside the door to show a look of disdain.
I dont think so. Although Gu Ying also knows the bone-shrinking technique, that person has a cold fragrance on his body. People in this line of work hate having any kind of smell on their bodies. Gu Ying is the best of the best. This should be engraved in his bones and wouldnt vite that.
The person outside the door carefully analyzed the situation. He didnt think that the man would be Gu Ying at all, but he couldnt say what the mans purpose was.
Hmph, no matter what, its not Gu Ying. Since he has chosen to step into the gates of hell, then Ill fulfill his wish!
After the person in the room finished speaking, there was no more sound.
The figure outside the door also flickered and immediately disappeared from the spot.
MO Ruyue was sitting at the table. Although they were a floor apart and so far apart, she had heard the entire conversation between the two people. When she heard that the person with the hoarse voice actually wanted to hit her, she couldnt help but reveal a cold smile.
Sure enough, there were some people who didnt even know what kind of human poison they were facing and were eager to make a move. Should it be said that they were blindly confident in their own abilities?
It seemed that Gu Ying had indeed frightened them, but notpletely. No, if she saw Gu Ying in the future, she would definitelyugh at him.
Back then, no matter who was the one doing the mission, as long as they revealed their personal style, the other party would be so scared that they wouldnt even have the will to resist. But now that Gu Ying hadmitted so many bloody cases, he still couldnt make these people restrain themselves. Should it be said that his skills had deteriorated?
MO Ruyue thought this in her heart, and a smile full of memories appeared on her lips.
She could not wait to see him again!
Chapter 341 - 341: The Elusive Ghosts
Chapter 341: The Elusive Ghosts
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After MO Ruyue had checked into the room, she had not left the room at all. It was as if she was not thirsty or hungry, and she did not need to take a bath.
If it was in any other city, the people of Lucky Restaurant would still y their roles, but in Forest City, they didnt even have the interest to pretend.
Anyway, no one would believe that they were really running a restaurant business here, especially since such a big thing had happened to the organization. Everyone in the building was in a state of panic, so they couldnt care less about putting on an act.
So after MO Ruyue moved in, being able to stay on her own silently was exactly what they wanted. How could they take the initiative to find trouble?
However, such an obedient customer would never see the sun tomorrow after tonight. Who asked him to be so stubborn and stay in such a closed restaurant? This was called you dont take the road to heaven, but you break into hell without a door.
They had long regarded MO Ruyue as a dead man, so they wouldnt bother to serve him.
Before the sky hadpletely darkened, the streets of Lin City were already empty. By the time the night fell, most of the lights in the city had already been extinguished. Even the entire building of Lucky Inn was pitch ck, without a single light.
A ck shadow appeared out of nowhere, and then another one, two The restaurant, which originally didnt even have a ghosts shadow when MO Ruyue checked in, suddenly had seven or eight ck shadows appear.
They went up the stairs silently, walked out of the restaurants door, and climbed up from the outside wall. They almost blocked all of MO Ruyues escape routes.
No matter what this persons identity was, or what his purpose ining to the restaurant was, since he couldnt be persuaded to leave, then he would make him staypletely.
The few of them had alreadyid out an inescapable to ensure that the kid who was staying would not be able to escape even if he had wings. Although the kid should have some martial arts foundation, it was not necessary to use so many people to kill him.
However, the manager of this restaurant had said that even a goshawk had to use all its strength to hunt a rabbit. Now was a critical period. It was better to kill the wrong person than to let the person go, and even more so, it was not possible to let the person escape because of carelessness.
Therefore, almost everyone, except for the person in charge, had turned out for tonights murder.
They quietly came to MO Ruyues door and carefully listened to the movements in the room.
There was no light in the room, and it was very quiet. It seemed like the person inside had already fallen asleep, but there was not even the sound of sleeping breathing, which was very strange.
The few of them had their faces covered, only revealing pairs of bright eyes.
They were all veterans in this kind of work, so when they discovered this abnormal phenomenon, they immediately looked at each other.
Im sure that person never came out of the room!
The person in charge of keeping an eye on the situation in the room repeatedly made hand gestures to defend himself. If he was used of negligence at this time, he would have to bear the consequences!
Wheres the person who didnte out? There was no movement in the room at all!
The other person also retorted with a hand gesture. Even if the kid could hold his breath for a long time, he couldnt let his heart stop, right?
Now, not only was there no breathing sound, but there was also no faint heartbeat.
The person in charge of tailing them didnt know how to exin himself. He had been staring at this room with his eyes wide open, so how could he know where the person in the room had gone!
Could it be that he could fly and disappear into thin air?
Thats enough, you two. Get ready and charge together!
A person who was obviously the leader of the group during their usual operations interrupted their dispute. No matter what the situation was inside the house, they were fully prepared and naturally had to rush in.
The tacit understanding between them allowed them to quickly adjust their conditions. After receiving the signal from their leader, they broke through the door together.
All kinds of hidden weapons and poisonous needles were first used to seal the window position, then the bed position. As for the other two, one went behind the door, and the other went straight to the cab in the room. With a sh of the snow-white de, they directly stabbed out.
Some even jumped up to the roof beams and searched every possible hiding spot in the house.
However, the entire room was empty. The person who should have been in the room was gone.
Impossible, absolutely impossible!
Seeing this result, the person in charge of keeping an eye on them immediately became anxious.
There were people watching outside the window and the door. He was responsible for the door. If the person didnt go out through the window, it was even more impossible to go out through the door.
Where is he?
The leader asked in a low voice.
He was starting to suspect if the person on the tail had really been careless, so much so that he didnt even know that he had disappeared.
Captain, I swear that Im not lying. If Ive lost him due to my negligence, Im willing to bear the most brutal torture of the blood tower, without a word ofint!
The person in charge of keeping an eye on them was forced to swear an oath. This oath was the cruelest and most vicious to all the people in the blood
tower. Although they did not even blink when they were harvesting lives, they were extremely cautious and avoided swearing an oath.
Seeing that he had made the oath without hesitation, the leader had already believed his words a little.
At the same time, he had to admit that this tenant was too strange. If he really didnt leave the house, where was he now?
They searched around the building a few more times, but still couldnt find any traces of anyone leaving. At this time, everyone felt a chill on their backs.
Could it be that the person was a ghost that appeared and disappeared like a ghost?
Although no one said it out loud, everyone could see it in the eyes of the others.
Clean up the traces and lets retreat!
Although the leader was shocked for a moment, he quickly calmed down and immediately gave instructions for the next step.
Everyone followed his instructions and began to clean the room in an orderly manner. They reced the paper windows that had been pierced by hidden weapons, repaired the door that had been kicked and damaged, and repaired all the ces in the room that had been pierced by hidden weapons. They only left when they could not see any traces without looking carefully.
Tonight, everyone will split into four groups and take turns to monitor the area outside the window and the door. I dont believe that this person will really disappear!
After the leader gave hisst order for the night, he could only helplessly follow the manager to report the situation.
Just after everyone had left MO Ruyues room, in just a joss sticks time, the two groups of people who were staring outside the window and outside the door suddenly realized in horror that the room that no one had entered and left before suddenly lit up.
The paper window clearly reflected the figure of the tenant who had just moved in today.
However, they had just rushed into the house and turned it upside down. After confirming that there was no one inside, with the repeated instructions of the leader, a total of four people were staring at the house with good eyes. Now the light in the house was on, and the figure was reflected on the window!
Where did the person in the roome from?
The people who saw this scene shivered at the same time.. With so many eyes staring at them, could it be that they were all hallucinating?
Chapter 342 - 342: Are You Actually Afraid Of Ghosts?
Chapter 342: Are You Actually Afraid Of Ghosts?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The person who had lit themp in the room was MO Ruyue.
She deliberately walked to the window and swayed around, so that the people watching outside could see her more clearly.
Originally, when she found out that the people in the restaurant were going to make a move on her at night, she had nned to help Gu Ying get rid of the people here first. Of course, she had also nned to do it in her own way, so that even if Gu Ying wasnt in Lin City, he would be attracted toe and find out what was going on.
However, MO Ruyue suddenly thought of the manager she had met before entering the restaurant. She was really quite eye-catching in Lin City. An outsider had just arrived in Lin City, and the same murder case happened in Lucky Restaurant. Wasnt this telling others that she was the murderer?
Although she had changed her appearance, voice, and body shape, she couldnt leave any clues behind. So, she changed her method.
After MO Ruyue entered the room, she went straight into the medium. How would the people outside know that she had this cheat? No matter how hard they thought and dug, they couldnt find out where she went.
She didnt wait in her interspace for nothing. Instead, she went straight to theboratory and found a kind of fragrance that had a mild beginning and a longsting end.
This was a smell she had discovered in a rainforest abroad in her previous life when she had almost failed a mission and was escaping.
When she was running, she had identally scratched something, leaving behind this faint smell. It was also this smell that led Gu Ying to find her, who was on the verge of death, and pulled her out of the gates of hell at thest second.
So this smell was a secret smell that only the two of them knew. If this Gu Ying was really her Gu Ying, then he only needed to smell it to know who she was, and there was no need for any words at all!
After mixing the fragrance, MO Ruyue went to the kitchen and made a table of delicious food, all of which were Gu Yings favorite food. She even used a time-elerating device to brew arge barrel of wine, which was also improved by the two of them ording to the ancient wine recipe. It was the only ancient wine in the world.
After doing all this, MO Ruyue still didnt rush out of the space. Instead, she checked the things she had already done again and again, afraid that there would be any mistakes.
Alright, everything is ready. Were just waiting for you to appear! But, Gu Ying, when are youing?
She looked at the table full of dishes and arge barrel of wine, mumbling to herself. In the end, she took out a white porcin bottle, filled it with wine, and prepared to take it out of the space.
Although she would definitely tell Gu Ying about the secret of the space and even bring him into the space again, of course, this time he would be in a conscious state, but she still wanted him to drink the wine that was separated by a lifetime.
Now, MO Ruyue was no longer afraid of being seen when she entered and exited the space. The space had evolved a real-time imaging system. To put it bluntly, it was like a surveince camera had been installed outside the space, so she could see the situation outside at any time through the camera.
Therefore, MO Ruyue watched the performance of the group of killers the entire time. The imaging system even thoughtfully provided several options such as night vision, low light, normal light, and strong light for selection.
After making sure that there was no one in the room and waiting for the time it takes for an incense stick to burn, MO Ruyue came out of the medium.
She slowly lit up the oilmp to tell the people outside that she was back!
Perhaps it was because MO Ruyue had been in a state of extreme excitement ever since she found out about Gu Ying, so she was even now toying with the group of assassins with great interest, like a cat ying with a mouse.
The light in MO Ruyues room lit up for half an hour before it went out again. This time, she didnt rush into the space, but sat at the table opposite the door and waited quietly.
The group of killers mighte again, and this time she had thought of a brilliant idea to y with them.
She didnt have any psychological burden about what she was about to do. Even if she didnt find trouble with blood tower, she had already been targeted by them because of Gu Ying.
They were already in a situation like fire and water. Even if she were to uproot the entire blood tower, she would not even frown.
However, the group of killers did not appear after a long time.
Alright, it seems like theyre waiting for me to get used to it.
MO Ruyue was the top one in this industry, so how could she not be familiar with these methods? So she just smiled faintly and temporarily adjusted her strategy.
Her sharp five senses allowed her to easily tell if someone was approaching, so she went back to the bed and changed her clothes.
With a few crisp sounds of joints, MO Ruyues figure changed again. Her limbs and body seemed to be out of sync, as if they were broken, hanging limply. If a gust of wind blew, they would even float with the robe covering her body.
After everything was prepared, MO Ruyue walked to the door and gently pushed it open.
The already rough doorknob made a teeth-numbing creak, and the group of people who were staring at the door immediately waited for the door to be slightly open.
This time, they had found evidence that the kid had left. They wanted to see what he was up to.
However, after staring at the room for a long time, they did not see anyonee out.
The oilmp inside had been extinguished, and it was pitch ck. They could only try their best to listen for any suspicious sounds.
Hehe
A burst of faintughter rang in their ears, as if someone had blown a breath on their necks at the same time.
It was not the aura of a living person, but a cold air that made ones scalp explode and gave them goosebumps!
The two men in charge of surveince almost jumped up. They bit their lips hard to prevent themselves from screaming. Instead, they looked at each other, trying to see what was behind each other.
However, there was nothing.
You, did you hear something?
One of them leaned closer to hispanion and kept looking around. He was looking forward to seeing something, but he was even more afraid of seeing something.
What, what was that sound? Dont, dont talk nonsense! I didnt hear a womansughter!
The other person responded fiercely. Even in such an emotional state, he did not forget to lower his voice.
The two of them were stunned at the same time, and subconsciously hugged each other tightly.
MO Ruyue entered the medium not far behind them. At this time, she couldnt help but shrug when she saw the two men hugging each other.
They were quite big, but they were too timid.
But then again, they were experienced killers, yet they were afraid of ghosts? While she was admiring the twos embarrassment, she was also looking for a chance to appear again.
After seven or eight times of this, the two men were already in a daze and their eyes were dull. However, any slight movement would make them jump up and wave their hands vigorously, as if this would scare away the hidden spirits..
Chapter 343 - 343: Sleep Till Daybreak
Chapter 343: Sleep Till Daybreak
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue didnt want to continue ying. She once again silently appeared behind the two people and took advantage of the fact that they didnt have time to react to ruthlessly stab two needles into their necks.
The strong anesthetic instantly knocked the two of them down. Then, they disappeared from the spot with MO Ruyue
Not long after, the door slowly closed again. Still, no one appeared, as if it had closed automatically out of thin air.
When the next group came to take over the shift, they suddenly found that the hidden sentry was empty. They were very surprised and searched up and down, but they couldnt find where the previous group had gone.
The moment they realized that the two of them had disappeared, everyones nerves immediately tensed up again.
Todays incident had been filled with evil intentions ever since the mysterious tenant had moved in.
The room that no one had left was now empty. The room that no one had entered suddenly lit up and showed a person. Now, even two of the people in charge of surveince had disappeared without a trace. It was impossible to say that they were not scared.
However, they were all people who were used to doing such things. If they were afraid of ghosts, they would have been killed by the vengeful spirits long ago. Why would they wait until today to receive their retribution?
Everyones heart was filled with suspicion and fear, but at the same time, they were constantly consoling themselves.
It was just that none of them had expected that an invisible person was among them, and that he had seen all of their expressions.
Youre still doing this job with this kind of mental strength? To think that this blood tower is a well-known industry leader, but the people they ept are all a bunch of ugly melons.
MO Ruyue was sitting leisurely on a chair. There was a huge light screen in front of her, and it had a 360 -degree rotating view, which could look in any direction ording to her mind.
The realm was bing more and more considerate, which really saved her a lot of trouble.
As sheined, she drank the wine she had brewed herself. Fortunately, she had brewed a fewrge barrels of wine, which was more than enough to drink with Gu Ying for ten days to half a month.
MO Ruyue also wanted to go out and kill everyone happily, but now that she had been reborn and had five sensible and cute babies, she had already been pulled into the sun.
After experiencing the warmth of the sun, who would be willing to return to the cold, damp darkness? So she had to do her best to pull Gu Ying out of that purgatory-like world.
Soon, the crowd dispersed. They were re-arranged to guard a few hidden sentries. Coincidentally, MO Ruyues position was where the hidden sentries line of sight met, which meant that she couldnt go out for the time being.
However, this didnt matter to Mo Ruyue. She had already achieved her goal, and that was to make these people like birds startled by the mere twang of a bow. Until GuYing arrived, they would be shrouded and entangled in a lingering fear.
As time passed, two more groups of hidden sentries had been rotated out. Each of them was on high alert. Although they had been on high-intensity missions before, they had never been subjected to mental torture.
So even if it was only for one night, everyones eyes were sunken, their faces were ashen, and the dark circles under their eyes almost reached their chins.
On the other hand, although MO Ruyue had slept in the interspace that night, she had a very good rest. After getting up, she took a hot bath. Her entire body was radiant and refreshed. It was really frustrating topare people.
Just as the sky was about to turn bright, MO Ruyue still managed to find a blind spot where the hidden sentries were changing shifts and sessfully slipped back into her room. So when she pretended to rub her sleepy eyes and walked out of her room, she could even hear the sound of her jaw being dislocated. Guest, youre up so early. Did you sleep wellst night?
A man who looked like a shop assistant took the initiative to greet MO Ruyue.
This person did not appear yesterday. The man with the mustache who greeted her did not even participate in the encirclement and suppression against her, nor was he in any of the hidden sentries who were monitoring her. He was a rather mysterious person, and no one knew what kind of role he yed in this building.
MO Ruyue thought to herself as she sized up the shop assistant in front of her.
He looked very young, probably not even twenty years old. His eyes were full of vigor, which was the mostmon look of waiters in restaurants and inns. However, no matter how confusing his appearance was, it couldnt escape MO Ruyues eyes.
His temples were raised high, and his pair of quick-witted eyes shone with a bright light. From time to time, he had to rely on a simple and honest smile to hide his true shrewdness and strength.
He was definitely an expert.
MO Ruyue concluded in her heart. However, even if he was an expert, in front of her, he was just a person who needed a little bit of attention.
She was by no means an arrogant person. Although the original owner was azy person after her rebirth, and after a few years of hard work, her body was riddled with holes, after her systematic conditioning and the transformation of the spirit spring water, her current ability had even exceeded the peak of her previous life.
Moreover, thanks to the spatial library, MO Ruyue had read many peerless secret manuals. It could be said that no one could take advantage of her unless a real top master who had hidden himself from the world appeared.
The only difference was how long they couldst.
Yes, I was really tired yesterday. I went to sleep not long after I went back to my room. I really did sleep until dawn.
MO Ruyue said with a smile.
You fell asleep the moment you returned to your room yesterday? The shop assistant was stunned, and the look he gave her became a littleplicated.
Yes, you dont provide hot water for dinner, so I had to go to bed early. MO Ruyue nodded, and then asked doubtfully, Why? Is there a problem?
Oh, no, no, thats not it.
The shop assistant immediately came back to his senses and exined to MO Ruyue, Its like this. Something has happened in our restaurant recently. In addition, its the new year, so some people havente back yet. So, we cant provide some services.
Oh, I see.
MO Ruyue nodded and said indifferently, It doesnt matter. I wont starve to death because of this anyway.
As she spoke, she walked downstairs, looking like she was going out for breakfast.
Young Master, if you dont mind, as an apology to you, our restaurant is willing to change your room and dining service to the highest standard.
The shop assistant hurriedly stopped MO Ruyue and told her his purpose foring.
It turns out that a small waiter in your restaurant can represent the manager to negotiate such a problem? This is the first time Ive heard of this.
How could MO Ruyue not understand what the person in front of her was nning? If she let them take the three meals, she would really be unable to eat. They had ten thousand ways to make her die of food poisoning quietly.
She had wanted to reject him directly, but something cold touched her chest, and she suddenly had another idea.
Alright, since your esteemed restaurant is so sincere, then if I dont ept it, wouldnt I be a little ungrateful?
She immediately agreed, and when their eyes met, they both smiled..
Chapter 344 - 344: A Hundred Tries, A Hundred Success
Chapter 344: A Hundred Tries, A Hundred Sess
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Very quickly, the waiter checked MO Ruyue in again. The new room was just as he had said before. It could indeed be said to be the highest standard of treatment.
Just imagine, in a small city that was even worse than a small town, there was a seven-star hotel in Dubai, and she was staying in the presidential suite of the hotel. It was almost like this.
After MO Ruyue had changed rooms, she had only looked around a little and found at least five secret holes that could monitor her every move.
Sure enough, it was a weasel paying a new years visit to a chicken. He didnt have good intentions. However, this would make her n more sessful.
Young Master, please wait for a moment. Breakfast will be served immediately.
The shop assistant saw a satisfied smile on MO Ruyues face and immediately began the second step.
Alright, thank you for your trouble, Little Brother.
MO Ruyue nodded. Unlike yesterdays cold and indifferent appearance, she actually seemed particrly easy-going.
After the waiter left, MO Ruyue walked to the window and opened it. Immediately, the room was filled with bright sunlight.
This side still faced the south, so the lighting was excellent. There was no need for any heating measures, and the entire room was as warm as spring.
MO Ruyue leaned against the window and looked like she was enjoying the scenery, but the corner of her eye had already locked onto the group of people who were still watching her outside.
Take a good look while you can see clearly now.
She smiled slightly, feeling extremelyfortable under the sun. She could not help but squint her eyes.
The breakfast that was sent over next could also be said to be extremely luxurious. MO Ruyue also showed a very good appetite and tried a few mouthfuls of almost every dish and staple food.
However, her evaluation of these dishes was very ordinary. Even the food made by her fourth son, Si Bao, was a hundred times better than this. If it were not for the fact that she wanted to cooperate with the people on the first floor as much as possible, she would not even have the desire to take a second bite.
When the food was finally taken away, almost half of it was gone. When the waiter left with thest te, a person came out of the room next door.
He has already eaten everything. If he doesnt have any suspicions, he will also eat lunch and dinner. We should be able to find out the result tonight.
The man told him everything he had seen.
Dont let your guard down. This man isnt simple. Maybe hes just beating us at our own game.
The waiter shook his head and said, not optimistic about the situation.
He always felt that he seemed to have overlooked something, but he was blinded for a moment, so he did not remember.
With his warning, the person in charge of surveince became much more cautious. Of course, their cautious conversation was heard by MO Ruyue.
Not bad, her alertness was still okay. Compared to the other few people who were timid and weak, he was considered outstanding.
It seemed that there were still one or two capable people in this building.
MO Ruyue thought to herself, her face still wearing an intoxicated andfortable expression as she basked in the sun.
She had already seen the generalyout of the city and the direction of the streets. She had also drawn a three-dimensional sketch in her mind.
The next step was to make a fewprehensive ns in preparation for weing Gu Ying.
The cases that Gu Ying hadmitted before were all to kill everyone in the blood tower, so blocking all their escape routes was MO Ruyues top priority.
Of course, she could have used a strong anesthetic, but it was obvious that Gu Ying wanted these people to be punished while they were sober, so she could only use it as ast resort.
The location of this restaurant was extremely ingenious. Not only did it have a main road that extended in all directions on the surface, but there were also small alleys that were like a maze in the dark. As long as it was someone who was extremely familiar with theyout of the city, they would be able to escape from it easily.
In addition, there must be secret rooms and secret passages in this restaurant. It was simply an impossible task to block all the escape routes when MO Ruyue was alone.
But the more difficult this mission was, the more excited MO Ruyue felt.
She could even hear the sound of her blood flowing in her veins. It was a summoning of dark desires that had long been rooted in her bones.
Mother, well be waiting for your return.
A bright and sweet smile suddenly appeared in front of her eyes. The young and tender voice was full of trust and dependence.
These were the words that Tang Tang would say every time she saw her off. The five of them would smile as they watched her leave and wee her back with smiles.
It was as if a basin of cold water had been poured on him. MO Ruyues evil desire was extinguished in an instant.
She knew very well that she was on the verge of losing control just now. If it wasnt for Tang Tangs smile and voice that pulled her back, she would have fallen into the dark abyss again, and might even be unable to extricate herself.
MO Ruyue secretly rejoiced and wiped her sweat. It seemed that the demon in her heart had not been removed, so she still had to be careful.
MO Ruyue didnt leave the room the entire day. Instead, she stayed in the room to write.
There was a pen, ink, and paper in the room, so she took them and began to write on them.
Through the surveince hole, the person who was monitoring the movements in the room helplessly watched her silently writing the Three Character ssic and the Thousand Character ssic for the whole day.
Mo Ruyue also ate the lunch and dinner sent by the restaurant. Even though it was only one-third of the amount, she had a taste of everything.
The people watching didnt find anything strange, but they didnt dare to take it lightly, so they patiently waited for the night to fall.
They had no idea that MO Ruyue had disappeared and reappeared several times in front of their eyes. However, all of that happened in an instant. How could a mortal with the naked eye detect it?
MO Ruyue had entered her interspace once after breakfast. She immediately tested the food and found traces of drugs in it.
However, the assassins of the blood tower didnt seem to want her to die at once. They had put some slow-acting poisons in her food. The most interesting thing was that in order to prevent her from being picky, they had put different poisons in each dish.
Those poisons could alwayse up with new poisons when they came in pairs, so as long as her chopsticks touched her lips, even if it was just a taste of a dish, she would definitely be poisoned, just that the effect would be a little slower.
MO Ruyue extracted all the poisons in the dishes and used the spirit spring water to light them up one by one. As expected, instead of wasting effort to reverse-engineer the antidote, it was better to use the spirit spring water to test it out.
However, from the results of theb rats poison tests, MO Ruyue knew the possible symptoms that might appear after being poisoned. Although it was a slow process, it was still a poison after all, so there would always be some reactions.
It would be even more exciting if she were to ingest all the toxins in one go.
After being fearless, MO Ruyue wasnt in a hurry to detoxify herself. She still had two meals in the afternoon and evening. She wanted to see what other tricks those people would y.
The meal at noon was just by the rules, and they did not y any tricks. At night, they began to cause trouble again. This time, the poison was a little heavier. It seemed that they still had ns to make a move at night..
Chapter 345 - 345: The Improved Version Of The Knockout Powder
Chapter 345: The Improved Version Of The Knockout Powder
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue went into theboratory as usual and came out after the experiment. Then, she began the next step.
She was humming a little tune, and there were papers with words on them all around her feet. There was still a thick stack on the table. This time, she began to nail the papers one by one on the cab, bed, wall, and even jumped up to the beam of the room. She even pasted them all over the ceiling.
The people in charge of surveince were still confused and didnt know what she was doing. It was only when their observation holes were covered one by one that they suddenly realized.
Could it be He already found out?
I dont think so. These holes are extremely well hidden. Even if we were to search for them, Im afraid we wouldnt be able to find them in a short time.
Thats right. From the moment he entered the room, he only nced around. The rest of the time, we watched him closely. Other than eating and writing, he didnt have time to look at anything else.
Or perhaps He already knew that there might be some, but he didnt know where exactly, so he simply covered them up.
Everyone was talking at once, but thest persons words were more reasonable and received unanimous approval.
If thats the case, how could he not have thought of the problem with the food and just ate it?
Maybe he has the antidote, so hes not afraid
The person who replied felt that it didnt make sense.
They knew very well what kind of poison they had put in his meals. Even if there was a panacea that could cure hundreds of poisons in the world, with him being poisoned in every way, there was no cure.
Everyone thought that the man was too smart for his own good and shot himself in the foot.
Now that the observation hole was sealed, the situation inside was unknown. However, at least they knew that the person was definitely poisoned, which was already half done for them.
Boss said that well explore again tonight. If we seed, well send him to the west directly and not leave any trouble behind.
As soon as one of them finished speaking, the person beside him blurted out, What if it doesnt work?
If it didnt work
Everyone felt a headache when they heard this.
No, no, no!
Jinx!
The person who spoke quickly was red at by hispanions, and even he wanted to give himself a p.
Without the detection hole, the situation in the room went out of control once again. The blood tower assassins rearranged their deployment again and continued to attack from both the window and the door. Although it was useless, it was better than doing nothing.
MO Ruyue heard themotion outside andughed to herself.
A single prank wouldnt scare them out of their wits, but if she could make them suspicious from time to time, then she would have achieved her goal.
As night fell, the entire Lin City was once again enveloped in the cold night. The waiter of the restaurant brought over hot water and politely asked MO Ruyue if he needed any other services. His eyes kept ncing at his face, probably to observe his reaction after being poisoned.
MO Ruyue had long used the spirit spring water to detoxify herself. Any reaction she showed now was mimicked by her after the poisoning experiment on the white mice.
After the poison in the dinner and in the breakfast was mixed, the damage to the body increased by more than ten times. Although it was not enough to kill people, if they wanted to recover, they would need to go through some conditioning.
Unless it was absolutely necessary, she would not harm her own body just to gain the trust of others.
Seeing blood spots appear at the bottom of MO Ruyues eyes, his hands and feet were slightly trembling, and blue stripes appeared in the blood vessels on his neck, a light quickly shed in the waiters eyes.
This kid was really poisoned? This reaction couldnt be faked. After all, even if he knew that the food might be poisoned, he wouldnt know what kind of poison it was, let alone what kind of reaction it would have.
After confirming that MO Ruyue had indeed been poisoned, the workers attitude changed slightly.
Guest should rest early. This little one will take his leave.
As if he was afraid that MO Ruyue would make him stay, he turned around and left after he finished speaking. He no longer dawdled like he did in the morning.
After the waiter left, MO Ruyue heard him make arrangements for the night to be carried out ording to the original n.
Come on,e on, I was afraid you guys wouldnte.
MO Ruyue was also rubbing her hands, ready to give them another unforgettable lesson. However, this time, it was not a small fight, but a real blood bath.
However, the n didnt change quickly. MO Ruyue waited until the ugly hour, but there was still no movement.
The entire restaurant was under her surveince. If anything happened, MO Ruyue would definitely be the first to notice, so this abnormal silence immediately raised her vignce.
Could it be that Gu Ying is here?
This was the first thought that shed through MO Ruyues mind.
The assassins of the blood tower had already found out that she was indeed poisoned, so they no longer had any scruples when they attacked. If they wanted to take action, they would do it as soon as possible without any dy. However, there was still no movement now, so something must have happened to the blood tower.
There was a hint of blood in the air. MO Ruyue immediately took out a gas mask and put it on, then covered it with a mask.
She was in a disguise right now. If Gu Ying really came and didnt know it was her, there would be an ident.
Therefore, after MO Ruyue had set up the protection, she quietly walked to the window and gently pried open a gap.
The slightly cold air entered the room, making MO Ruyues mind more clear. She pulled down her gas mask a little, and as expected, the fresh air made the fishy and sweet smell in the room more obvious.
That sweet and greasy smell made people want to vomit. MO Ruyue carefully distinguished it again, and her eyes suddenly lit up.
She felt that this smell was very familiar. As expected, it was an improved version of the knockout powder she had developed.
There should be a few ingredients that Gu Ying couldnt collect, so she found substitutes. However, the effect shouldnt be too different.
In the past, when the two of them were working together, MO Ruyue specialized in medicinal chemistry, while Gu Ying specialized in physical weapons and it. However, that didnt mean that they werent proficient in each others strengths. Thus, Gu Ying also had a certain foundation in medical chemistry, and it was possible for him to seed in improving medicinal agents.
It was only because the smell was a little weak and had been improved by the drug that she couldnt tell that it was a knockout powder she had developed.
MO Ruyue immediately entered the medium and used a special potion to wash off the disguise on her face. Then, she restored the bone xun to her original appearance. Finally, she drank a dose of potion and changed her voice back.
When she came out of the space, she had returned to her original appearance.
The entire restaurant was silent, and even the wind outside the window had stopped.
It was almost pitch ck in Lin City, and there were only a few lights from afar.
MO Ruyues heart was beating like a drum. Although it wasnt the first time she had seen Gu Ying, the first two times they had met without knowing each other couldnt be considered good memories.
Time passed by, and every second she waited felt like a century. She really wished she could take out the time adjustment device in the space and speed up the time to the moment she met Gu Ying.
Since she had already used the knockout powder, the assassins of the blood tower must have fallen into their own illusions. No wonder a few of their originally calm and smooth breathing suddenly became heavy, rapid, and even slow for a long time.
Gu Ying would definitely make them suffer mental torture in the illusion, then use physical pain to wake them up, and finally take their lives.
Therefore, he should be watching this restaurant from somewhere and only appear when he felt that he could..
Chapter 346 - 346: The Best Man
Chapter 346: The Best Man
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue took a step back, and then another. This time, she lit the oilmp and began to set up the table.
Her figure was reflected on the window paper. It was no longer a mans figure, but a womans exquisite figure.
With Gu Yings cautiousness, he would definitely check the identity of everyone who stayed in the restaurant before he made a move to make sure that he would not hurt the innocent.
She had moved in as a man, and now she was showing her female body. Such an abnormality would definitely attract Gu Yings attention.
MO Ruyue didnt want to wait anymore. She wanted to see him now!
There was a faint tap sound outside the window, as if something had fallen on the arched eaves of the next floor.
Its here!
MO Ruyue picked up the wine pot and poured a cup of wine into the empty cup opposite him.
Her hands were shaking so badly that she had to hold her wrist with her other hand to prevent the wine from spilling out of the ss.
In order to increase the concentration of the wine fragrance, MO Ruyue had already warmed the wine in the medium. Now that she poured it out, the wine fragrance immediately overflowed and suppressed the fishy and sweet smell that filled the room.
The window was already slightly open, and the fragrance was spreading out through the gap.
tter.
There was another sound, as if someone had slipped and almost fell. Then, there was a bang sound. The window was wide open, and a figure broke through the window and slowly stood up.
Even though his face was covered by a ck cloth, his starry eyes had already announced the identity of the person who hade.
Why are you here?
His eyes were full of surprise. He blurted out a sentence, but it was followed byyers of disappointment.
It seems that youre not very happy to see me? MO Ruyue raised an eyebrow and teased him on purpose.
It seems that every time we meet, the one whos unhappy is you and not me.
The man frowned.
Was she still his benefactor, MO Ruyue?
Just now, she was Was she teasing him?
He had always been confident in his intuition, but this time, he was a little uncertain.
The smile in MO Ruyues eyes was almost overflowing. God knew how much she wanted to run into his arms now, but this would probably scare Gu Ying. Even if she was his benefactor, she probably couldnt escape the fate of being thrown out.
She felt her hands and feet moving. She had never been so impulsive before.
Its a long night and its so cold. You came all the way here, do you want to sit down and have a ss of wine to warm your body?
No, her lips were trembling as she spoke. She could not continue acting!
How did you get this wine?
The mans attention was instantly brought back to the wine. This kind of wine fragrance could only be found in the wine created by Ice me, and there was only one in the world. That was why he had lost hisposure when he smelled it just now and jumped in on impulse.
Lets try it first. The taste will be different when its cold.
MO Ruyue was not in a hurry to answer his question. Instead, she pushed the wine ss that belonged to him forward.
The mans eyes flickered, and he strode over. He picked up the ss and was about to drink it in one gulp when a soft palm reached over and covered the back of his hand, stopping his movements for a moment.
Arent you afraid that Ill poison you?
MO Ruyue looked straight into his eyes and asked again, Arent you going to ask why Im here?
If you wanted to harm me, I would have been a skeleton a long time ago.
The man shook his head. What he didnt say was that even if the wine was poisoned, he would still drink it.
She had saved his life, so there was no harm in returning it to her.
MO Ruyue put down her hand. The sudden loss of warmth made the mans body tremble, as if he wanted to grab her hand back.
In order to suppress that impulse, he pulled off his mask and drank the wine in one gulp. Then he was stunned. After a long time, he turned his eyes and looked at MO Ruyue in a daze.
The woman in front of him smiled like a flower, but her eyes were filled with tears. She smiled at him and said, Its me, Gu Ying!
Ice me?
Gu Yings throat rolled a few times and his lips trembled. After a long time, he finally spat out two words.
His voice was extremely soft, as if he was afraid that he was dreaming and that he would wake up if he were to speak a little louder.
MO Ruyue flew forward and pounced into the arms of the ice me like a swallow returnmg to tne torest. sne Jumped directly on top ot mm and nugged him tightly with all four limbs.
Gu Ying subconsciously caught the woman who had pounced on him. After confirming that the soft and warm touch was real, he immediately held her tightly in his arms.
Thats right, it was his Ice me!
That wine, that body fragrance, and the way she pounced on him were all unique to Ice me!
No wonder he felt that she was so familiar. No wonder he had inexplicably trusted her the first time he saw her, even willing to entrust his life to her. Ive been looking for you for a long time A long time
Gu Ying buried his face deep into MO Ruyues shoulder. His slightly cool hair exuded the cool fragrance of green tea. If it was in his previous life, it would have been mixed with a minty fragrance, which was the smell of Gu Ying.
They had been together for too long, almost like Siamese twins, so much so that the other partys scent had seeped into their skin and bone marrow, and could no longer be wiped away.
MO Ruyue nodded hard, her cheeks rubbing against Gu Yings cheeks and neck. She wanted to say something, but she couldnt say a word. She could only lean harder on him, wishing she could be embedded into his flesh and soul.
Gu Yings grip was so strong that it almost broke her bones. Every time she exhaled, only a small amount of air woulde back in. If this continued, she would be in danger of suffocating.
However, she did not care at all. Gu Ying was so excited that he had forgotten himself, but he would be the first to realize that something was wrong with her. Besides, as long as she could reunite with him, this degree of pain was nothing at all.
Sure enough, as MO Ruyue had expected, although Gu Ying had lost his form for a moment, when he heard the heavy and hurried breathing by his ear, he almost immediately let go of her and pulled her away a little. He looked at her and asked nervously, Bing Er, are you okay? Where are you feeling ufortable? Did I hurt you?
MO Ruyue smiled and shook her head, her eyes full of gentleness.
She raised her hand and carefully traced every inch of the lines.
It was different. Although the degree of his faces beauty was no different from that of his previous life, it was still different.
However, her Gu Ying, no matter if it was in her previous life or this life, was the best man!
I wanted to find you, but there were some things I couldnt let go of, so I was a stepter than you. I originally thought that once I settled things next spring, I would start to search for you.
MO Ruyue recalled what she had just heard and hurriedly exined to Gu Ying.
She did not forget him for a single second. Ever since she realized that she had been reborn, she had been madly trying to find him!
I know, I understand.
Gu Ying shook his head, his eyes full of smiles,yer byyer, no longer as cold and dead as before.
Ying, I have another secret to tell you. But before that, should we clean up this ce first?
MO Ruyue already couldnt wait to show him her space, but there was still something to do at the moment, so she could only endure it for a while.
Just as she was about to jump down from Gu Ying, the big hand on her back pressed her down again and wrapped her tightly in his arms..
Chapter 347 - 347: Sealing Off His Escape Route
Chapter 347: Sealing Off His Escape Route
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ill do it. In the future, dont touch your hands with these things. Theyre dirty.
The deep voice circled in her ears and trembled all the way to the bottom of her heart, making MO Ruyues waist go soft. She had no strength left and could only lie in the mans arms.
Gu Ying had never said such words before. They werepanions whose souls were the mostpatible with each other. In that dark age, they could only survive by snuggling up to each other like this.
But it turned out that his words had such a destructive effect on her?
If she had known earlier, she would have seduced him to say it.
MO Ruyue was a little regretful, but it wasnt toote. They were lucky to have a second chance to start over.
Gu Ying, you dont have to do this anymore. The sun is very warm, and I want you to enjoy it with me.
Shey on his shoulder and suddenly felt drowsy. Her eyelids were heavy, but she still had a lot to say and a lot of things to do. She couldnt sleep yet! If youre tired, then go to sleep. You can wait for me here in peace.
When Gu Ying heard the fatigue in her voice, his heart felt like it had been rubbed, and it was tightly curled up. Every beat hurt badly.
He carried the woman who was clinging to him like a ko bear and walked gently to the bed, ready to put her on the bed and let her rest.
As for the assassins in the restaurant, their fates had been decided long ago.
Gu Ying, Ill apany you.
MO Ruyue was about to bite the tip of her tongue and use the pain to wake herself up. However, her lips had just opened slightly when they were blocked by something.
It was warm and soft, like cotton candy.
No, there was also the coolness of the mint. As expected, it had the magical effect of waking her up instantly.
MO Ruyues eyes widened. The close distance made her almost cross-eyed, and she couldnt see that handsome face clearly.
But his eyshes were so long that they seemed to be able to touch her face when they moved
Ah, ah, right, he even had dimples
She thought about it in a daze, and countless messy thoughts shed through her mind. It was such a sweet moment, but what was she thinking about? A palm covered her, blocking her vision, and pressed her eyelids down.
Close your eyes,
His voice was a lot hoarse, making MO Ruyues face instantly burst red. She alsoplied with his words and obediently closed her eyes.
After a long time, as if a century had passed, Gu Ying slowly got up, while MO Ruyue gave out a light snore. She was actually fast asleep.
Gu Yings lips were also darker than before. He licked his lips and the smile in his eyes softened.
He opened a corner of the nket next to him and wrapped it around MO Ruyues waist, then went to close the open window.
The drug in the room had long been removed with the antidote when he came in. Now, the whole room was filled with the cold fragrance that belonged to them.
Have a good sleep. Wait for me, Ill be back soon.
Gu Yings hand traced MO Ruyues eyes and brows. He was reluctant to leave and did something that didnt match his words.
MO Ruyue seemed to have heard him. She smiled sweetly in her sleep. Her face rubbed against his palm and she fell asleep again.
It swayed leisurely and felt like it was floating. It was also warm, as if it was soaking in a hot spring.
If she was in the air, it should be cold. Was she dreaming?
As soon as this thought appeared, MO Ruyue opened her eyes almost immediately and shouted, Gu Ying!
She struggled to break free from the rope that bound her, but the rope was tightly wrapped around her, not allowing her to break free.
Bing Er, wake up, youre dreaming!
A gentle and slightly anxious voice sounded in her ear. MO Ruyue quieted down. Only then did she realize that she was snuggled up in Gu Yings arms, and the rope that was binding her was only his arm.
Ying, am I dreaming?
The sleepiness in her eyes hadnt disappeared yet, and she still had the innocence of when she first woke up. Gu Yings throat tightened when he saw this, and his body suddenly began to heat up.
Yes, you had a dream. You kept talking in your sleep. You were in a deep sleep, but not very well.
Gu Ying slowed down his speech, and as he spoke, he tidied up her hair that was a little messy from sleeping.
I thought I thought it was just a dream to find you
MO Ruyue snuggled deeper into Gu Yings arms. She had not been afraid of the cold for a long time, but when she was by his side, his hot body temperature kept tempting her.
He was hers anyway, what was there to be afraid of!
Gu Ying didnt say anything, only hugging her even more tightly.
He was also afraid that this was all a dream. Even though he held her tightly in his arms, he still could not believe that he had really found her.
However, Gu Ying wouldnt say these words to MO Ruyue. Even if he didnt say it, they were already connected in their minds, so how could they not know each others feelings?
Weve already left the blood tower?
MO Ruyue was alreadypletely awake. She had already sized up the surrounding environment just now. She was not in the luxurious room in the blood tower.
Yes, Ive already taken care of it. I saw that you were sleeping soundly, so I took you away without waking you up.
Gu Ying didnt go into any more details and only briefly mentioned it.
MO Ruyue had gone through countless life and death situations with him. She knew very well what kind of bloody and terrifying scene was hidden behind such a sentence.
He did what he said and started to push her toward a brighter ce instead of pulling her back into the darkness.
She didnt expose his thoughts. In short, he must walk under the sun in the future. She wouldnt allow him to hide in the darkness again. If that happened, their rebirth would be meaningless.
Where are we going next? Xu City or Sun City? Ill go with you!
MO Ruyue took the initiative to ask about Gu Yings n. If he didnt say it, he wouldnt be able to hide it.
Bing Er, didnt you say that you have some other secret to tell me? Now that youre awake, tell me about it.
Gu Ying didnt answer and instead directly changed the topic. Even his eyes looked elsewhere, not meeting MO Ruyues eyes.
Ying, do you think you can hide from me?
She didnt want to beat around the bush anymore. They all knew that she couldnt leave him to do these things alone, so why waste time chasing and hiding?
Gu Ying finally turned his gaze and looked down at her. His eyes were pulled by the flickering candlelight and also wavered.
I cant stop you.
After a long while, he sighed.
Of course you cant stop me. What nonsense are you thinking?
MO Ruyue said matter-of-factly.
If you dont want me to do it myself, then I have help for you. Let me do the logistics. Is that okay?
She took a small step back. After all, Gu Ying had already begun to walk into a dead end. Once he walked in, it would not be easy to pull him out.
Therefore, what she should do now was not to press him step by step, but to retreat in order to advance.
Let hime out first, then block his way out, and then
It was time for her to give and take.
MO Ruyues heart had already made proper arrangements, but her eyes were very innocent and secretly proud.
Your support, is it the Bai family? Gu Ying asked after some thought.
Youve been paying attention to me?
MO Ruyue asked instead of answering.
She didnt know why, but her heart suddenly felt sour..
Chapter 348 - 348: I Slept For Two Days
Chapter 348: I Slept For Two Days
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When Gu Ying first started to pay attention to her, he didnt know that she was ice me. Moreover, the person from the blood tower that she interrogated said that Gu Ying would kill so many people because someone wanted to touch her.
Could it be that Gu Ying had some thoughts about the MO Ruyue of this life?
As soon as this thought came to her, it immediately got out of hand and instantly wrapped around her heart, causing her to feel stuffy and full.
Youre my savior. Of course I have to pay attention to you. Otherwise, how can I repay you?
Although Gu Ying was an extremely intelligent man, he seemed to be particrly slow when it came to rtionships.
He didnt realize what MO Ruyues true meaning was, and only gave an answer as if it was a matter of course.
So youre only paying attention to me because you want to repay my kindness?
When MO Ruyue heard this, she still felt ufortable in her heart.
So Gu Ying really didnt notice it. Could she be an ice me?
She clearly felt an inexplicable sense of familiarity with him, but he did not
A womans heart was like a needle at the bottom of the ocean. Even MO Ruyue wouldnt know how to answer such a question.
Everything he said was wrong, and not saying anything was even more wrong.
Gu Ying finally realized that something was wrong with her. He was stunned and reyed the conversation just now, only to find the problem.
What are youughing at?
MO Ruyue saw that he suddenlyughed, and his eyes seemed to have seen through some secret. She suddenly felt ufortable all over and couldnt help but raise his thorns and ask fiercely.
It was fine if she didnt ask, but once she asked, Gu Yings suppressed smile waspletely released, and heughed in a carefree manner.
Im asking you, what are youughing at!
This time, MO Ruyue knew that he had really seen through her thoughts. She couldnt help but clench her fist and hit his chest.
Her constantly vibrating chest was like the mostfortable massage chair. The corners of her lips curved up in a carefree smile, and finally, MO Ruyue also smiled.
I think you and I have the same feeling. We both have an inexplicable sense of familiarity with each other. Thats why Ivee to your side time and time again when my life is in danger.
Gu Ying seriously answered the question just now. This time, his answer made MO Ruyuepletely relieved.
She knew it!
They were the perfect couple and could not tolerate anyone elses interference. How could Gu Ying be moved by another woman other than her?
However, MO Ruyue still stared into his eyes for a long time. After making sure that there was no hesitation in them, she lowered her eyes and said slowly, Ying, let me help you.
Even if I dont agree, youll still secretly follow me. You know that I cant do anything to you, right?
Gu Ying said with a bitter smile.
He had never been able to reject the request of the ice me. Even if she wanted to be enemies with the whole world, he would definitely follow her without hesitation.
MO Ruyue nodded in satisfaction. She reached out and touched Gu Yings cheek, once again letting the temperature of his body prove that everything was not a dream.
Let me sleep for a while more. Ill tell you my biggest secret tomorrow, and there will be no more secrets between us in the future.
It was strange to say that when Gu Ying was not around, she would not feel tired even if she did not sleep for a few days and nights. But as long as Gu Ying was around, she would yawn and yawn. Her eyelids were extremely heavy, and she just wanted to sleep.
It was said that it was because the person beside her gave her a sense of security, so her body was loyal to her mind and showed signs of fatigue. It was not because she was tired of this person, but because she knew that this person could give her enough security.
Go to sleep. Im here. No matter what secret it is, you can tell me after you wake up. Gu Ying replied gently.
The contours of his face were extremely deep and resolute, but at this time, because he was holding the most important girl in his arms, his whole body became soft, and his eyes were so soft that water was almost dripping out.
MO Ruyue had a good nights sleep. When she opened her eyes again, the first thing she saw was Gu Yings firm chin and sexy adams apple.
As if she was possessed, she reached out to touch it. The moment she touched it, she felt Gu Yings body shake, and then her hand was caught.
Youre awake? Why didnt you sleep a little longer?
Ive already slept well. Ill be dazed if I sleep any longer.
Although MO Ruyue said this, her body was still in Gu Yings arms, not wanting to move at all.
Gu Ying naturally let her be. He only smiled when he heard her words and then dragged over a food box with pastries and wine inside.
After he looked around, he picked up a yellow pea cake and put it MO Ruyues mouth.
Eat something. If youre still sleepy after eating, you can continue sleeping.
MO Ruyue opened her mouth and ate the yellow pea cake. She also conveniently rolled the crumbs on his fingers into her mouth,pletely unaware of how ambiguous this action was.
Gu Yings eyes darkened, and his throat rolled. Then, he turned his gaze with difficulty.
He and MO Ruyue had long been connected in their minds, and they could no longer tolerate anyone else. Although they were usually stuck together and slept on the same bed, they had not had any substantial rtionship.
They walked on the line between life and death every day, and what they needed was a high level of concentration. Once the two crossed that line, some things would change.
In the past, Gu Ying had always thought that his thoughts were correct, but when the two of them parted in thest moments of his previous life, he realized that he was wrong, and he was ridiculously wrong.
Since he had a second chance in this life, he had to seize it, but the premise was that he had to solve the current trouble first.
Im not sleeping anymore, my bones are a little sore. MO Ruyue hugged Gu Yings arm and said with a smile.
Ill give you a massage.
Gu Ying let her do whatever she wanted, and when he heard this, he immediately started massaging her waist.
His broad palm rubbed her waist inch by inch, rxing her tight joints. Warm inner energy passed through her skin at the same time, forcing out the soreness inside, making MO Ruyue close her eyesfortably.
Isnt this morefortable than any other massage chair?
Ying, how long have I been sleeping? It looks like the sky is about to brighten. MO Ruyue asked in a deep voice.
She was already very clear-headed just now, but after being pressed by Gu Ying, she became drowsy again.
No, if this went on, she really wouldnt be able to wake up.
She was very determined in her heart. She pressed again and got up, but her body still honestlyy in the crook of Gu Yings arm, not moving.
Its not that its getting bright, but that its getting dark again.
Gu Yings voice had just fallen when MO Ruyue opened her eyes and rolled over to sit up.
Its getting dark again? I slept in your armsst night, so Ive been sleeping for the whole day?
However, what she received next was an even more unexpected answer.
No, you slept for two days. Thats why its getting dark.
Gu Ying had just finished speaking when a rumbling sound came from MO Ruyues stomach, interrupting what she was about to say.
No wonder I feel so hungry. Ive been sleeping for two days?
MO Ruyue also felt that it was incredible. She had never slept for so long before. Even if she used the nerve-soothing incense, she would only sleep for more than ten hours.
And now, she had slept for two whole days, nearly 48 hours?
This was simply unbelievable.
Why didnt you wake me up?
As she asked, she turned around to get the pastries from the lunchbox.
It was time for her to eat, but she wasnt picky.
I saw that you were sleeping so soundly, so I couldnt bear to part with you..
Chapter 349 - 349: Lying Down And Counting Money Will Do
Chapter 349: Lying Down And Counting Money Will Do
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gu Yings words made MO Ruyues nose turn sour. She replied in a low voice, Mmm!
It was her Gu Ying.
No matter what, Gu Ying always put her first. Even if she did something wrong, he would indulge her, apany her in her mistakes, and help her clean up.
It was great that he was back by her side.
After filling her stomach a little, MO Ruyue still decided to leave the remaining space in her stomach to the hot food.
She opened the car window slightly and said to Gu Ying, Where are we going? Sun City or Xu City?
These two ces were not close. If she rode the big ck horse, it would take more than half a day to get there. Now, she was sitting in the carriage, which was moving slowly, so it would take a long time.
To Xu City. Gu Ying said briefly.
He was looking at a map in his hand. It was the city defense map of Xu City.
Did you get this from the ck market?
MO Ruyue stuck her head out to take a look, and at the same time, she memorized the correspondingyout on the map.
Right. Other than the heirloom seal, theres no problem with anything else.
Gu Ying focused on theyout of the blood tower, and then spread out with it as the center.
Xu City is the furthest away. I see that youve been getting closer and further away these few times. Arent you afraid that theyll catch the pattern and make preparations?
After MO Ruyue finished eating the pea, she dusted her hands and leaned back into Gu Yings arms. When she spoke, the hot air she exhaled was on his neck. She saw that his face was faintly blushing and smiled slyly.
So what if Im prepared?
Gu Ying raised his eyebrows. Although he asked back, there was a sense of arrogance in his words.
MO Ruyue chuckled. Thats right. Even if they were prepared, they could still kill their way in and out of that group of people.
Therefore, if he was afraid of them, he would just kill them!
Because MO Ruyue was beside him, Gu Yings speed had obviously slowed down. In the past, his style of doing things was swift and decisive. Even if he was a thousand miles away, he would still rush over at the fastest speed. But now, it was different.
After stopping at an inn in the nearest town, Gu Ying paid the driver the fare and sent him back.
Ying, are we still going to walk slowly? Then Ill have to help both of us change our appearances.
MO Ruyue said as she took out a small wine pot.
Her eyes had been fixed on GuYing, so she naturally didnt miss the change in
his pupils when he saw this scene.
Bing Er, is this the secret you wanted to tell me? You have a space?
Gu Ying had also reincarnated, so he was more epting of such things than the real ancient people, so he almost immediately guessed the truth.
Yes, but thats not all.
MO Ruyue held his hand and smiled. Are you ready? Follow me.
As soon as she finished speaking, the two of them had already disappeared from where they were.
You can store living things in your space?
Gu Ying looked at the changing scene in front of him and knew that he had already entered the space. He could feel that the air here was especially fresh, even morefortable than the oxygen-rich forest.
The air could clear ones mind with a single breath. He had only said a sentence, but his entire body had reached a veryfortable state.
Yes, but thats not all.
MO Ruyue brought Gu Ying to a spring, took out a small wooden spoon, and said to him, Try it.
Gu Ying scooped a spoonful of spring water and took a sip. He immediately looked up at MO Ruyue in surprise. Is this spring water the reason why the air in the space is so fresh?
With just a mouthful of spring water, a stream of cool and then scorching air began to spread to his limbs and bones. This spring water was definitely of the highest quality.
This spring water has many wonderful uses. It can detoxify all kinds of poisons, and it can also change the edible and medicinal properties of nts. To put it simply, this spring water contains a magical spiritual qi, and its effect of extending ones lifespan is at its minimum.
MO Ruhan pointed to the herbal field in the distance and said, Any one of the herbs here can be sold for a sky-high price outside, and people will definitely fight over it.
So you dont have to worry about money at all
As Gu Ying spoke, he took out a tourmaline ring from his arms and put it on MO Ruyues thumb.
I was thinking of giving this to you after Im done with the trouble here, but it looks like you wont need it anymore.
What a coincidence, I also have a thumb ring for you.
MO Ruyue waved her hand and a small box flew over from a distance andnded in her hand.
Gu Ying was no longer surprised by these scenes, so he only looked on indifferently, not moving an eyebrow.
It wasnt fun.
MO Ruyue pouted. She hadnt seen enough of Gu Yings surprised expression.
One had to know that she had been surprised for a long time when she first
saw the various wonders of this space.
When she lowered her head to open the box and put the ring on Gu Yings hand, he looked at her with a gentle gaze and his other hand could not help but stroke the top of her head.
This is a token from the Xiao family. Only those who are regarded as distinguished guests are qualified to get it. Look, I got it for you.
MO Ruyue raised the hand with the thumb ring and heated the slightly cold jade with his body temperature. The character Xiao in seal script was faintly revealed on the thumb ring.
The Xiao family of the southern ridge? Gu Ying looked at the thumb ring on his hand and said in surprise.
He had once epted a mission to deal with the Xiao family. At that time, he had made the Xiao family suffer a loss. He didnt expect to be an important guest of the Xiao family now. What a wonderful fate.
Yes, the mistress of the Xiao family, Ye Youwei, is a close friend of Madam
Bai. I happened to save Madam Bai previously, so I got to know her. After that,
I asked her to find out more about you, and that was how I confirmed the three cities.
I saw that she was sincere in wanting to form an alliance with us, and the Xiao familys intelligencework is also top-notch, so I agreed on your behalf.
MO Ruyue then waved her hand and another small box flew over. There was also a thumb ring inside.
Look, I have one too, but its much worse than yours. I only have a one-month time limit.
She then looked at the one that Gu Ying had put on for her and asked curiously, Whats the use of this thumb ring? Is it just a decoration?
No, this is a key. A key that can open the treasure vault.
Although Gu Yings answer was also very tempting, it was a little far from the answer that MO Ruyue wanted.
However, she knew that it was not the answer she wanted. After all, V/ho would wear a proposal ring on their thumb?
By the way, did you leave behind the gold notes on the beam of my house?
MO Ruyue suddenly thought of something and immediately asked Gu Ying. Yes, I did. At that time, this was the only way I could repay my gratitude.
When Gu Ying thought of the bag of gold notes, he couldnt help butugh. He didnt know what he was thinking back then to actually do this.
Yes, youre the only one who can do such a strange thing,
MO Ruyue felt that she didnt need to do anything now. She could just lie down and count the money every day. Not to mention the money that Gu Ying had earned, just the money that she had earned herself was enough tost her more than ten lifetimes.
Not to mention that there was a space full of rare herbs. However, if she were to go out and buy them, she was afraid that her future would not be good.
She still understood the principle of treasuring a jade ring being a crime..
Chapter 350 - 350: The Biggest Regret
Chapter 350: The Biggest Regret
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Also, Im not done with my demonstration.
MO Ruyue held Gu Yings hand and walked directly to the mushroom house in the distance. The things inside were the main show, especially to Gu Ying. It must be his favorite.
Sure enough, after seeing the various rooms that had evolved in the mushroom house, Gu Ying finally revealed a shocked expression.
Especially when he saw the tool room, the light in his eyes could almost be described as fanatical.
After MO Ruyue saw it, she felt jealous Again.
Men, hmph!
As expected, engineering instincts were engraved in the DNA.
However, Gu Ying was indeed a genius in weaponry. Even though MO Ruyue wasnt bad, she was still inferior to Gu Ying.
After reliving his addiction to firearms, Gu Ying reluctantly sent his old friends back to the armory.
He and MO Ruyue both knew that once firearms appeared, it would bring about a terrifying change to the progress of mankind, so they had reached a consensus on this point.
They couldnt stop the emergence of firearms, but they could prevent them from actively bringing them into the world.
Pandoras Box should not have been opened in their hands, unless this was the only way out.
After visiting the space, MO Ruyues next step was to let Gu Ying drink the remolding medicine she had concocted.
In the beginning, she had drunk the spring water directly, butter on, she had added many magical herbs from the valley of treasures. The effect was several times better than drinking the spring water directly.
This was something she had prepared for her babies. She also thought that if she could find Gu Ying in the future, she would let him drink it to reforge his bones.
Gu Ying naturally drank it without any hesitation, and the symptoms that appeared were very mild. Even if the process of rebirth was inevitably painful, to Gu Ying who had long been numb to pain, it was not even considered an itch.
After washing off the dirt on his body in the bathroom, Gu Ying didnt wipe his body clean. He only came out with a bath towel around his waist.
Although it wasnt the first time he saw Gu Yings body, MO Ruyue still felt that this body, which was created with Gods blessing, was very pleasing to the eye and very attractive.
In the past, when she looked at this body, it was like a doctor looking at a patient and treating him like a piece of frozen pork. But now, it was different.
That was the way a woman looked at a man. Besides, Gu Ying was the man she had set her mind on. Not only could she see and touch her own pork, but she could also eat it!
Unwiped water droplets dripped from his tied-up hair and rolled down his neck. MO Ruyues eyes followed the water droplets all the way down.
Out of the blue, she was hit on the head. Although it didnt hurt, it pulled her gaze back from somewhere.
Aiya, are you knocking on the watermelon? Is it ripe? Do you want to eat? MO Ruyue clutched her forehead and said in a daze.
How petty, he didnt even allow her to see his own things, not even her. Could it be that he wanted to let that vixen take advantage of him?
No, just the thought of it made her blood pressure rise. She wanted to roll up her sleeves and find some unlucky guy to vent her anger on.
Its ripe, so I think itll definitely be sweet. Why dont you let me try it?
As Gu Ying spoke, he had already arrived in front of MO Ruyue. He suddenly bent down and stole a kiss on her lips.
Their lips parted as soon as they touched, just like a dragonfly touching the water. MO Ruyue didnt even have time to feel it clearly before that wet softness left.
Youre cheating! Sneak attack on me!
MO Ruyue was not the kind of person who was shy and pretentious. She had set her mind on Gu Ying and was used to being familiar with him. Other than not breaking through thest line of defense, they had shared all kinds of intimacy.
Some of it could be said to be the result of the adrenaline from walking on the line between life and death, but her feelings for Gu Ying were not fake in the slightest, and he was the same for her.
Gu Yingughed and allowed her to y. Since they reunited, the smile in his eyes had not disappeared.
expand your meridians andpletely absorb all the medicinal effects.
MO Ruyue was just fooling around, but she was not careless in doing the proper things. Especially when it came to Gu Yings body and skills, she was more concerned about it than her own body.
Back then, she didnt have anyone to help her expand her meridians. After all, there were some acupuncture points that she couldnt reach, so some of the medicine that she had absorbed into her body had dissipated. However, this problem wouldnt repeat itself on Gu Ying.
It would take several hours to perform this set of acupuncture, which was a challenge to both their energy and physical strength.
Fortunately, they were already used to dealing with high-intensity emergencies. Even if they didnt eat, drink, or move, they could still hold on for about three days. These few hours were not difficult for them.
However, just in case, MO Ruyue still took out a few bottles of energy recovery agents and ced them beside the two of them.
After everything was ready, she began to perform the acupuncture.
The silver needles that MO Ruyue used were specially made by someone she had hired. She had even spent a lot of money to add a little meteorites into them.
Although the needles were extremely thin and looked unremarkable, when these needles were shot out at high speed, they could easily prate a persons skull.
She quickly identified the acupuncture points and inserted the needle. At the same time, she had Gu Ying follow the route of the needle and began to guide the flow of her inner energy.
After the cleansing, the remaining medicinal power had been forced into his dantian by his inner force. Now that he had activated his inner force, the medicines effect was wrapped in his meridians and slowly moved forward.
After MO Ruyue had inserted all the needles, a small cycle waspleted. By this time, the two of them were already drenched and couldnt find a dry spot in their bodies.
Gu Ying was covered in sweat from the heat rising from his body, while MO Ruyue was too focused and exhausted.
At this time, the energy recovery agent he had prepared in advance came in handy.
As soon as they drank a bottle, the two of them immediately recovered their physical strength and continued to work in high spirits.
There was no concept of time passing in the space. MO Ruyue had already adjusted the flow of time in the space. When they went outter, only an instant would have passed in the outside world.
Of course, this was also a surprise she left for Gu Ying.
If all the secrets were revealed, it would be so boring. Unfortunately, when Gu Ying was reborn, he did not get such a heaven-defying space.
A long timeter, MO Ruyue had once asked him this question. Would he feel regretful if he didnt have a space like her?
Its enough that youre here. Whats there to be regretful about? If you werent here, that would be my biggest regret.
Gu Ying said indifferently.
MO Ruyue looked at him carefully for a long time, but she didnt see any hesitation in his eyes.
If things could happen again, even if she had to lose this heaven-defying space, she still hoped that the heavens would care for her and Gu Ying, so that they could meet again after their rebirth and be together.
This was the only point that she would not give in..
Chapter 351 - 351: Bring The Babies With You
Chapter 351: Bring The Babies With You
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After MO Ruyues acupuncture, Gu Ying began to sit cross-legged and adjust his breathing.
His inner breath still had to circte thirty-six cycles before it could return to his dantian.
This time, MO Ruyue could be sure that Gu Yings martial strength was above hers again.
Originally, the foundation of the two people was different. The original MO Ruyue was a weak woman who didnt even have the strength to tie up a chicken, but the person Gu Ying possessed was a real killer from the beginning.
MO Ruyue was also adjusting her breathing at the side. The only threat in the space was Gu Yings qi deviation, but the possibility of this was zero.
In the process of regting her breathing, she couldnt help but recall thest scene of the two of them in danger.
Ice Bing Er
A series of calls woke MO Ruyue up from her memories. She opened her eyes, but her vision was blurry. Then, a warm touch touched her cheek.
Why are you crying?
Im not
MO Ruyue subconsciously retorted. She also reached out to touch her face, and actually felt a wet coldness.
Why did I cry? She looked at Gu Ying with some doubt. She couldnt help but ask.
From her previous life to this life, she had always shed blood instead of tears. Why did she suddenly be so fragile after reuniting with Gu Ying, even to the point of tears?
Alright, its fine now. Im here, and I wont leave you again, I promise! Gu
Ying said, his heart aching. He couldnt help but pull MO Ruyue into his arms.
This was only a small interlude, but the shock Gu Ying received was even stronger than his reunion with MO Ruyue.
They were so lucky to have met in another time and space. It was no wonder that MO Ruyue, who had always been so strong that even men were ashamed of their inferiority, could not help but cry in her dream.
News of the murder case in Lincheng quickly spread, but this time, people were surprised to find that the murderer had changed his way ofmitting the crime.
There were still no survivors in the unchanged building, but this time, he did not burn the entire restaurant.
He just destroyed all the traps in the building and exposed them to the officers who came to investigate the case.
It was also because of this change that the people, who had been kept in the dark, realized that this restaurant was actually a ck shop that could kill people and steal goods. In this way, the waiters and managers who died inside were definitely not good people.
This was also the change that Gu Ying had made after reuniting with MO Ruyue.
In the past, he had killed people and did not care to express anything. Even if he was called a cold-blooded and perverted murderer, he would not be moved at all.
But now, he really had a weakness. It was not only MO Ruyue who was already living under the sun, but also the five babies by her side.
They couldnt let their reputation be ruined because of him.
So you are now prepared to announce the crimes of the blood tower to the world?
MO Ruyue sat beside Gu Ying and asked after hearing his thoughts.
In any case, they were already in a situation where they would not rest until one of them was dead. Gu Yings drastic move had directly turned blood tower from a victim to a murderer, and his role had also changed from a homicidal maniac to a messenger of justice on behalf of heaven.
But why did he provoke Gu Ying for no reason? Presumably, the remaining survivors of the blood tower were also thinking about this problem.
Even if they traveled slowly, they were getting closer to Xu City.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying had already drawn up a battle n. Of course, they would have to use the Xiao familys power.
Xu City was thergest city in the entire Yueyang Residence, other than Ping City. Naturally, its level of prosperity was not ordinary.
Tomit a crime in such a bustling city. It wasnt an easy task to get rid of a restaurant with such arge customer flow without alerting the internal staff.
Gu Ying listened to MO Ruyues suggestion and decided to cooperate with the Xiao family.
The reason was very simple. MO Ruyue wanted to end the battle as soon as possible. She was still waiting for the 15th day of the first month of the lunar year to bring Gu Ying home and celebrate the festival with her babies.
Thest time you were injured, you stayed at my ce. The babies didnt see you. This time, when I bring you back, theyll definitely be shocked. MO Ruyue said with a smile.
You didnt let them see mest time because I look like your ex-husband?
Gu Ying had heard her talk about this matter before, and even now, when he mentioned the word ex-husband, he couldnt help but feel a sour feeling in his heart and mouth.
Ah, that I was shocked when I heard about it. I thought that the younger ones might not remember their biological father, but Da Bao and Er Bao must.
So, I didnt dare to let them see you.
MO Ruyue didnt hear the jealousy in Gu Yings words and answered frankly.
If that person didnt die, would you still be his wife? Gu Ying suddenly asked.
Ah? What are you talking about? Other than you, Ive never thought of being anyones wife.
MO Ruyue subconsciously blurted out, but by the time she realized that something was wrong, it was toote to take it back.
What did you just say? Say it again!
Gu Ying immediately grabbed her wrist tightly and easily pulled her into his arms.
What did I say? I didnt say anything!
MO Ruyue immediately shook her head like a rattle-drum, firmly denying what she had just said.
I heard it, Bing Er. Say it again!
Gu Ying also changed his strategy. He softened his voice and leaned close to MO Ruyues ear, softly coaxing.
I Im saying, I wont be a strangers wife. Aiya, dont stick to me, its so hot! MO Ruyue felt her face heat up, and she pushed Gu Ying away.
Even if she had already determined that Gu Ying was her only partner, there were some things that he should have said first.
She didnt know why she was so insistent on this.
Perhaps it was because no matter how strong she was, she was still a woman.
When Gu Ying saw this, he knew that if he continued to force her, it would have the opposite effect, so he took a step back and said, What do you n to do now? Using this widows identity and waiting for that man to return?
How could it be!
MO Ruyue immediately retorted. Ive actually thought about it long ago. After the new year, Ill go to the government to dissolve the marriage. But I dont know if theres such aw to support it now, so I still have some homework to do.
Also, I have to inform the babies about this first. Otherwise, if they think that
I dont want them anymore, itll be a big joke.
She stopped here and looked at Gu Ying seriously, Ying, do you mind if I raise the babies by my side?
She didnt want to leave the babies who had already entered her life, but she also didnt want Gu Ying to have any ill feelings.
As long as youre by my side, I dont care about anything.
Gu Ying shook his head.
The second time he recuperated was in MO Ruyues current home. He knew very well how deep her feelings for those babies were.
And the five babies were all very smart and sensible, and very well-behaved and considerate. No wonder the cold-hearted Bing Er loved them so much.
As long as it could make her feel happy, he would agree to anything. She was more important than his life, and nothing could surpass her..
Chapter 352 - 352: Assignment Of Tasks
Chapter 352: Assignment Of Tasks
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gu Yings answer was within MO Ruyues expectations. She smiled slightly and reached out to touch his face.
Gu Ying, they are very important to me, but your status is unparalleled. You must remember this no matter what!
She spoke slowly and solemnly, staring into Gu Yings eyes. Then, she saw his eyes curve up, and his eyes were filled with her shadow.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying had disguised themselves as a middle-aged couple. After her skillful transformation, even the babies who had been with her for the longest time would not be able to recognize that the middle-aged woman in front of them was their mother if they stood face to face.
MO Ruyue put away the two thumb rings that the Xiao family had given her. Although those things could be used to contact the Xiao familys secret spies, it would also alert the people who were secretly monitoring the Xiao family.
Gu Ying was already used to the underworld here, so he naturally had other ways to find the Xiao familys spies.
The two of them werent in a hurry to find the Xiao familys spies. Instead, they directly rented a small, secluded courtyard in Xu City.
It was a detached courtyard, and it was a distance away from the surrounding neighbors. It could easily avoid the situation of the walls have ears.
They disguised themselves as a business couple, and in order to make their act more realistic, they even took in a small caravan.
The goods they were selling were cloth, oil, and grain. Their final destination was a small town outside the Yueyang Manor.
Of course, there was a city along their way called Sun City.
After they settled down in Xu City, the couple began to look for buyers to cooperate with, and they even started to talk about business.
Gu Ying was in charge of this matter, while MO Ruyue yed the role of a good wife. Every day, he would take a little servant girl out to buy ingredients and so on. In fact, he secretly left some clues and then sat there waiting for someone toe.
On the second night after they settled down in Xu City, there were indeed peopleing.
Just after nine oclock, a figurended in the small courtyard. He directly walked to the window outside the main house and lightly knocked twice. The honored guest has arrived, I apologize for not weing you.
As soon as he said this, the door of the main house opened silently.
The person who came was also bold because of his skill. He walked in directly and closed the door behind him.
There s no light in the room, but the darkness didnt affect martial artists like them much.
Can you show me the key to our distinguished guests sess?
While the person was speaking, the couple in front of them had already taken the initiative to sh the ring in their hands.
One was emerald green while the other was milky white. When the person saw this, he immediately knelt down on one knee, his attitude much more respectful than before.
Please forgive me, honored guest. I have to investigate because of my duties.
Dont kneel, get up.
MO Ruyue waved her hand and had the man stand up.
We have a cooperative rtionship with your master, so theres no need for such formalities. As long as you cooperate with our actions, itll be your credit. Yes, if theres anything you need this subordinate to do, honored guest can just say it. The head of the family has already ordered that whatever the honored guest says, we must follow his orders and not disobey.
When MO Ruyue heard these words, she also secretly nodded in her heart.
It was no wonder that the Xiao family could sit at the top of the intelligence team. Their vision, structure, and style of doing things were notparable to ordinary people.
Its said that you cant set a trap without giving up the child, but what if you give up the child and dont set a trap for the wolf?
Many people would have such concerns, and it was inevitable that they would be timid in their actions.
After hearing the Xiao familys words, she was no longer worried that they would drag her down.
Now, I need you to gather the people in charge of both the light and dark lines in Xu City, as well as the main operation team members. Because whats going to happen next is a big move, and it should be something youve been looking forward to for a long time.
MO Ruyue had heard from Ye Youwei that the Xiao family and the blood tower were sworn enemies. This was the basis for their cooperation, so this time, when she and Gu Ying wanted to eliminate the blood tower, the Xiao family should be the first to take the lead.
She didnt hide her intention to y down Gu Yings existence and push the Xiao family to the position of murderers. Obviously, the head of the Xiao family didnt care at all.
As long as they could get rid of the blood tower, this great threat, and also obtain the alliance of two top experts at once, they would definitely profit without losing.
Furthermore, the Xiao family had the official channels of the Imperial Court to clear their name. In addition, Gu Ying had already changed his strategy and released new rumors, making this matter even easier to handle.
Why dont youe with me, honored guest? Our Xiao ns stronghold is much safer than your courtyard.
The person made a suggestion, and MO Ruyue and Gu Ying also nodded and epted it.
It wasnt that they didnt have their guard up, but before MO Ruyue left, Ye Youwei had already told her how to determine if the person who came to meet them was from the Xiao
Therefore, they had only chatted with him for so long after they had confirmed it.
If that person was a fake or a mole, he would have been killed by Gu Ying not long after they met. How could he still be alive to suggest this?
The three of them were all qinggong experts. After silently blending into the night, they flew towards a certain ce in the east of the city, one in front and two behind.
The Xiao familys contact point was a gambling den. As expected, it was a ssic stronghold that often appeared.
The more openly it was made into a stronghold, the less it would attract attention. After all, everyone knew that it was dark under the light, so no one would be so stupid to do it knowingly.
After MO Ruyue entered the gambling den, she went straight through the secret passage and came to a private house at the back.
She was surprised to see at least eight people waiting in the house. They must have received the news and been waiting for her every day.
Honored guest, I am Xiao Jincheng, the General Manager of the Xu City branch. The head of the family has ordered that once the honored guest arrives, it will be as if he hase in person.
The one who came forward to speak was an ordinary-looking middle-aged man. He was not tall, but his body was sturdy, especially his pair of eyes that were shining brightly. One look and you could tell that he was an extraordinary master.
Well, lets make a brief introduction. What are you responsible for?
MO Ruyue didnt waste any words and directly started to exin the abilities and responsibilities of the people present.
After the others had introduced themselves, she already had a preliminary n in her heart. She then turned to look at Gu Ying.
This is my partner. Next, let him talk about the n weve made before and assign you your tasks.
She had discussed the n with Gu Ying, but she had left the exining of the n to Gu Ying.
Her style of doing things and thinking were still the same as in her previous life. She was not as familiar with the dark worldsws in this time and space as Gu Ying was, so she yed to her strengths and avoided her weaknesses. At the same time, it saved her a lot of trouble.
Gu Ying nced at her and a smile shed across his eyes. Then, he returned to his original cold and distant self.
He took out a map that was folded to the size of a palm and unfolded it. He pointed to the marked ces on it and began to exin.
As he spoke, the more the Xiao family members listened, the more shocked they were. They didnt expect to hear such a meticulously nned operation
They put themselves in the shoes of the blood towers people, and when they looked at this n again, their hearts couldnt help but turn cold, but at the same time, they felt very fortunate.
Fortunately, the two people in front of them were friends and not enemies..
Chapter 353 - 353: The Center Of The Disaster
Chapter 353: The Center Of The Disaster
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying returned to the small courtyard they had rented. They still acted ording to their disguised roles, but now most of the matters had been handed over to the Xiao family, and they were only left with the role of overall nning.
This was also what MO Ruyue and Gu Ying had strongly requested. Since they had to return to the light in the end, why not start letting go now?
Gu Ying listened to her every word. He never minded having a trace of blood on his hands, but he would also immediately put down his butchers knife because of MO Ruyues words.
There were only a few days left until the Lantern Festival. Because MO Ruyue had promised the babies that she would go back to celebrate the festival with them, Xu Citys trip had to be sped up.
Honored guests, the brothers are in ce ording to your arrangements.
The identities of the guests in the restaurant have also been checked. There is no possibility of idental injury. We can take action tonight.
The person who was standing in front of MO Ruyue and reporting to her was Xiao Jincheng.
He wouldnt expose MO Ruyue and Gu Yings identities and would only address them as distinguished guests. This was also what MO Ruyue wanted.
This was called being sensible.
Although he had a tacit understanding of their identities, as long as he didnt expose them, they could still work together happily.
Very good, then lets end this quickly.
MO Ruyue nodded. She didnt feel guilty at all for the dozens of lives that were about to be lost.
She had already seen the evidence that Gu Ying had gathered. Every single person in the blood tower had their hands covered in blood, and no one was innocent.
Strictly speaking, Gu Ying was also one of them, but this was MO Ruyues weak spot. She was the double target, so what if she protected her own?
Xiao Jincheng bowed and cupped his fists, then disappeared in a sh.
Its indeed easier to do things with underlings. Well just be the hands-off managers. Gu Ying, why were we so stubborn in the past?
MO Ruyue said with a sigh.
She was just saying it. If she really wanted to take in a follower, she had to consider whether she would be stabbed in the back. She didnt want to waste her energy on that.
In the future, leave all these things to me. Ill be your little brother.
Gu Ying said dotingly.
After reuniting with MO Ruyue, the two of them were almost stuck together, except when they were in the toilet and taking a bath. They had never been separated.
It was just like in her previous life, but they had changed time and space, and their appearances had changed.
Forget it, youd better get used to the life under the sun.
MO Ruyue hurriedly shook her head.
She knew how difficult it was to break free from the darkness. Back in Lin City, she was almost dragged back by the dark desire in the depths of her heart, so she could not rx for even a moment.
Alright, Ill listen to you.
Gu Ying didnt have any objections to what MO Ruyue said as long as she was happy.
The two of them were talking affectionately when MO Ruyues expression suddenly changed. She reached into his arms and took out a bone whistle.
Why did the whistle sound on its own?
She looked at the bone whistle in her hand in surprise. The whistle was trembling slightly, emitting a high-frequency sound wave.
Ordinary people couldnt hear these sound waves, but it was easy for MO Ruyue, who had extraordinary senses, to hear them.
This is a humans phnx?
Gu Ying took the bone whistle from her hand and examined it carefully. He could easily tell that it was a whistle carved from the bone of a persons index finger.
Yes, this is a gift from the ck wolf king. Its the wolf king of the pack that showed special interest in you.
When MO Ruyue said this, Gu Ying remembered. That huge ck wolf had really left a deep impression on him.
Maybe its because they already knew about our rtionship, thats why theyre so interested in me. Dont you think so, Bing Er?
Other than that, he really couldnt think of any other reason to attract the wolf packs attention.
I cant rule out that possibility. After all, animal instincts are stronger than humans. Besides, those wolves were not ordinary wolves. I seem to have forgotten to tell you something.
Lets wait first. The whistle wouldnt have sounded for no reason. Could it be that something has happened to the wolf pack again?
MO Ruyue originally wanted to tell Gu Ying about what happened in the valley of treasures, but the vibrations of the bone whistle suddenly became more intense, and the sound became sharper. This made her realize that the matter might be very urgent.
However, she was now in Xu City, which was hundreds of miles away from the Qin Vige. Even with the big ck horse, she would need at least a day to get back.
It was already past noon. Although there was still some time before the night operation, it wasnt enough for her to go back and forth. Moreover, she didnt even know if the wolves were still in the mountains near the Qin Vige.
Bing Er, why dont you go back first and see if anything happened to the wolves. Im here, and theres also the Xiao family, nothing will go wrong.
Although Gu Ying also wanted to go back with her, he knew that MO Ruyue would not agree.
They were all people who would finish what they started, so if he did not personally end the blood tower incident, there would still be some regrets.
Ill go out of the city to take a look first. This bone whistle is used to summon wolves, so it might have the opposite effect. Even when the wolves are in trouble, it will inform its master.
MO Ruyue didnt think of herself as the wolf packs master. She and the wolf pack had always been friends on equal footing.
She had saved them before, and they had given her more in return. Other than the valley of treasures, it was the mirror valley behind the valley.
As soon as this thought shed through her mind, MO Ruyues head felt like it had been pierced by a sharp de. She started to feel an intense pain. Her body swayed slightly, and she fell into the arms of Gu Ying.
Bing Er, whats wrong?
Gu Ying was shocked. Why did she suddenly show such a painful expression? In an instant, the back of her clothes was soaked with cold sweat.
Countless fragments of images quickly shed through MO Ruyues mind. In the image, a wolf pack was running extremely fast in the forest, and countless fireballs streaked across the sky, smashing down fiercely.
A meteor shower?
It looked like arge-scale natural disaster, but no one knew if it had happened before or was about to happen.
MO Ruyue only felt that her heart was beating fast and panicking, as if an ident was really going to happen.
No, Ying, I really have to go out of the city to take a look. It seems like something is going to happen.
She couldnt stand it any longer. If this had happened before, there would definitely be records of this disaster, but what if it was about to happen?
It was impossible to determine where the wolves were from the scene of them running, but one thing was certain: the meteorite rain had affected arge area. The Qin Vige and the county were most likely at the center of the disaster.
Although Gu Ying didnt know what had happened, he didnt have time to ask when he saw MO Ruyues state and just followed her out of the courtyard.
MO Ruyue didnt leave the city blindly, but went to find Xiao Jincheng first.
Honored guests, why have you twoe? Is there anything else you need?
Xiao Jincheng was making the final arrangements for his men, in order to ensure that tonights operation would be a sure-hit one, leaving no survivors and making no mistakes..
Chapter 354 - 354: Two Big Dark Horses
Chapter 354: Two Big Dark Horses
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
He saw MO Ruyue appear in a hurry, her expression anxious and urgent. Although she thought that things had changed, she immediately asked nervously.
Mr. Xiao, How long have you been in Xu City? If you want to check the City Record, where should you go?
MO Ruyue nned to first check the records of the citys major historical events. If such a great disaster had really happened, even if it did not happen in the city, it would still be recorded in the City Records.
This subordinate has been sent here for ten years. The master has set up spies in all the major cities. Its just a matter of how many people there are. Even in a small county or town, there will be one or two people on standby.
As for the City Records, the governments library will have them.
Xiao Jincheng didnt know why MO Ruyue would suddenly ask about the City Record, but he also gave a detailed answer.
Then can the City Record be lent out? I want to investigate something.
MO Ruyue immediately asked another question.
Since Xiao Jincheng had been operating here for ten years, his rtionship with the county magistrate should be good. The City Record only recorded some things that happened in the history of the city, and it was not a top-secret document, so it was not difficult to borrow it.
Do you want it now? Ill immediately go and borrow it for our honored guest.
This was just a piece of cake for Xiao Jincheng. He had only gone out for a short while, and he came back with a wooden box on his back.
The wooden box was about half the height of a person, and the books inside and the box were extremely heavy. If Xiao Jincheng wasnt a martial arts practitioner and had much more strength than the average person, he would need at least two strong men to carry it.
MO Ruyue opened the box and took out the City Record, distributing it to the Xiao family.
I need you to put aside your work for now and help me check if there are any records of natural disasters in the history of this city, such as fireballs from the sky.
Her words stunned everyone, but they immediately came back to their senses and quickly searched.
This was the advantage of having specially trained personnel. They would only listen to orders and not ask much, saving time.
There were more than a hundred city records in the half-a-man tall box, each of which was at most three to five years old, and at least one to two years old. It would take more than a few days and nights for one person to finish reading all of them.
MO Ruyue was also constantly checking. She had already put the bone whistle into her space, but it was still shaking as if telling her that danger was still there.
Two hourster, more than half of the city records had been read, and the sorted out natural disasters had filled a piece of paper. There were things like the earth ox turning over and the river changing course, but there were no fireballs falling from the sky.
Had there never been a meteor shower before?
MO Ruyue felt a little strange.
This was not a rare astronomical phenomenon. It should have been recorded in history.
By the way, as long as its an anomaly in the sky, it counts as well. Even if its not a fireball falling but a rain of fire streaking across the sky, it also counts. She then added.
Although it seemed a little toote to replenish it now, for these people who had been specially trained, a photographic memory was the most basic training subject. As long as they had seen it, there was no possibility of forgetting it.
Honored guest, I have a few records here.
A person stood out and casually took out a few books from the pile of books that he had just stacked. I also have some here.
i l also have one!
A few more people also stood up and took out the books they had seen. As they were talking, they quickly turned the book to that page for MO Ruyues convenience.
After reading through all the city records, MO Ruyue was even more flustered.
ording to the records, the rain of fire only shed across the sky, and no fireballs fell to the ground.
ording to the scene she saw in the illusion, the meteorites falling to the ground would definitely cause heavy casualties, but from the city records, let alone heavy casualties, other than causing some panic, there was not even a single injury.
If this had never happened before in history, did it mean that it was a warning of what was about to happen?
This time, MO Ruyue couldnt sit still anymore. She had to rush back to the county city. Although she didnt know when the things in the illusion would happen and where the meteorites would fall, if she could find the wolf pack, they would definitely know where to hide.
Alright, return the things. I have something to do and must leave immediately.
She gave a simple instruction and turned to leave.
Although Xiao Jincheng didnt understand why she came and went like the wind, MO Ruyue was now an important guest of the Xiao family, and any of her words and actions were equivalent to the family head himself, so they wouldnt ask for the reason.
Besides, she had already provided the mostplete n and even had the support of special drugs. Even if the two distinguished guests had left, there was nothing wrong with it.
Gu Ying hade with MO Ruyue. He had been in the room watching the entire process of the incident. He could vaguely guess the reason why she had lost herposure, and his expression also became serious. Bing Er, I cant let you go back by yourself, lets go together.
He followed behind MO Ruyue and took the initiative to tell her.
No, I know you too well. If you cant solve this problem yourself, it will be a hurdle in the future.
MO Ruyue still shook her head and refused.
It wasnt that she didnt want Gu Ying to apany her at this time, but she didnt know when the natural disaster woulde. What if there was still a month, or even a year?
If Im not there when you need me the most, thatll be a hurdle that Ill never be able to get over. Nothing is more important than this.
Gu Ying said without hesitation.
He had already designed the n to perfection and had the best people to execute it. So what if he wasnt personally involved in the entire process?
Only MO Ruyue was the first consideration for all his actions. How could he put the important thing in the wrong ce because of this matter?
MO Ruyue was stunned. It was only then that she realized that she had been thinking about something else. She had been entangled in some minor details and had forgotten what her true feelings were.
Okay, I understand. Lets go together.
She finally revealed a smile, and the two of them joined forces. He flew away. As for bathing auspicious Lucky Restaurant in blood?
The Xiao family would do it.
MO Ruyue and herpanion didnt start summoning the big ck horse until they were outside the city. However, there were two horses that galloped over this time.
They had the same appearance, height, and bone structure. It was not an exaggeration to say that they were carved out of the same mold.
What is this?
At first nce, she couldnt even tell which one was her big ck horse.
Lets talk while we walk.
Gu Ying flipped onto the horse on the left, while the horse on the right raised its head and neighed, extremely intimate with MO Ruyue.
She immediately got on her horse, and the two of them shook the reins and galloped away at the same time.
Although MO Ruyue didnt know when the disaster would happen, and didnt know where the wolves would be now, the only thought in her heart was that she must be with her babies at this time.
Therefore, the two of them were now flying in the direction of the county, ready to pick up the babies first..
Chapter 355 - 355: The World Is About To Fall Into Chaos
Chapter 355: The World Is About To Fall Into Chaos
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The two ck horses galloped on the road like two ck bolts of lightning. The wind whistled in their ears. If it were an ordinary person, even if they were to shout loudly, theirpanions would not be able to hear what they were saying.
However, this wasnt a problem for MO Ruyue and Gu Ying. Even if the two of them were whispering, the other party could hear them clearly.
GuYing first told Mo Ruyue about the origin of his mount. When he heard that he had picked up this good horse for no reason, Mo Ruyue was a little speechless. She had the spiritual space, which was a heaven-defying cheat.
Gu Ying also had his own luck, which seemed to be his natural affinity with animals.
She was the one who saved the wolf pack and the one who bought the ck horse. However, to Gu Ying, these two things had delivered themselves to his door. As expected, he and she had their own strengths and were extremelyplementary.
Out of curiosity, MO Ruyue casually asked, Are there any other animals?
There was also a ck panther that wanted to ambush me, but I let it go after injuring it.
Gu Yings words made MO Ruyue feel a little familiar. She kept feeling that this scene had appeared before.
Did the ck panther have a heart-shaped pattern on its left hind leg? MO
Ruyue asked after some thought.
Yes, its still near the upper thigh of the tail.
Gu Ying replied without hesitation, then paused for a moment before saying, Dont tell me youve seen this panther before?
MO Ruyue nodded speechlessly. Thats right. It also ambushed me before. I only let it go after I injured it.
That panther had actually attacked the two of them at the same time, and was also released after being injured by them. This was really a wonderful fate.
It turned out that the mysterious force that had brought them to this time and space had already arranged all kinds of coincidences for them when they had not known each other.
Bing Er, did you just see a bad illusion?
This time, it was Gu Ying who asked.
He had deduced some things from MO Ruyues reaction. In his previous life, MO Ruyue would asionally see illusions and had escaped certain death a few times. However, about a year before theirst ident, this illusion had never appeared again.
He didnt expect that after his reincarnation, this ability that was 100% effective but had no idea when would appear again.
Gu Ying, I saw a wolf pack and a meteor shower.
No wonder you checked the city records. Is it because youre not sure if it has happened before or will happen?
Gu Ying immediately connected MO Ruyues series of actions.
Yes, thats why I cant sit still. Actually, I really wish that it had happened before, but now it seems that it didnt.
MO Ruyue said worriedly.
She didnt know how much time she had left, nor did she know howrge the meteorites rain would be. There was only an illusion right now, and the only thing she could tell was that once the disaster struck, there would definitely be heavy casualties.
Dont worry, Ill be with you.
Gu Ying was very clear about MO Ruyues ability to predict the future. It would definitelye true if it did not appear, so he would notfort her with empty words like Nothing will happen.
MO Ruyue nodded silently and kicked the horses belly again, urging the big ck horse to speed up.
The two of them ran at top speed for hundreds of miles, and they returned to the county from Xu City by nightfall.
At this time, the city gate was already closed. MO Ruyue did not intend to alert the city guards. Moreover, before the matter was over, it was not good for Gu Ying to appear in front of people.
So she simply let Gu Ying lead the two ck horses and wait in the forest outside the city, while she herself flew over the city wall and entered the city quietly.
In winter, the days were long and the nights were short. Although the weather was getting colder by the day, the Bai familys restaurant was still closed as usual.
At this time, Bai Jinshang and his son were still in the restaurant, so MO Ruyue directly sneaked into the restaurant. Without alerting anyone, she came to the father and sons office and directly pushed the door open.
Whos there!
The father and son of the Bai family were extremely vignt. They looked up almost immediately as soon as the door opened, and then they were stunned.
Lady Qin, why did youe back?
They had never thought that they would see MO Ruyue at this time. They had heard from the Xiao family that she was in Xu City with Gu Ying. How could a divine soldier suddenly appear in front of them?
Master Bai, I have something very important to tell you. I just dont know if youll believe me.
MO Ruyue didnt intend to stay out of this, especially after the alliance with the Xiao family. It was equivalent to tying the Bai family and the Ouyang family to the same rope.
In addition to Imperial Doctor Tian, these were all people she had to protect. As for the others, she could only say that they were on their own.
However, not many people would believe in strange things like illusions, especially those with high status or deep background.
She could only give it a try. If he did not believe her, there was nothing she could do.
Bai Jinshang saw that MO Ruyues expression was extremely serious and immediately became serious as well. He solemnly said, Lady Qin, if you have anything to say, just say it. I believe you.
Thest three words carried a lot of weight, and it was not a promise that anyone could easily make.
Alright, then listen carefully. One day in the future, there will be a rain of meteorites. The area affected will be extremelyrge, and it will also cause heavy casualties. I hope you can make early preparations.
But I dont know when the disaster will happen, nor do I know where the safe ce is. The information I can provide you is limited. I only know that the county city will be at the center of the disaster.
The father and son of the Bai family were stunned. Even after MO Ruyue stopped, they didnte back to their senses. For a moment, the whole house became quiet.
After a long while, it was still Bai Jinshang who hesitantly opened his mouth, Lady Qin, so youre rushing back now to pick up the babies? With all due respect, may I ask where you would like to go to avoid this disaster?
This question was indeed a little presumptuous. After all, if a person like MO Ruyue really had a sanctuary, it would definitely be a secret.
MO Ruyue shook her head. I dont know where to go to avoid it either. But the further away from here, the better. Were preparing to go north for now.
Although she didnt see much in the illusion, from the shing trees, the wolves were running south, and the fireball was also flying in the direction of the southern sky, so she chose to go north.
North?
Bai Jinshang nodded. Although MO Ruyue did not reveal more to him, he was already very grateful that she told him the news of the impending disaster and even told him the direction of escape.
Then does Madam Qin mind if I tell the Xiao family and the Ouyang family about this?
Bai Jinshang asked cautiously.
Although he didnt know how Lady Qin predicted the disaster, he was extremely convinced by her words. These words couldnt be spread directly, or the world would be in chaos.
He was very clear that once someone investigated after the incident, Lady Qin, who was the first to spread the news, would be pushed to the forefront of the storm, and might even be pushed out as a scapegoat.
Therefore, she was already taking a huge risk bying to him to tell him about this matter. Moreover, she was doing it for the sake of the friendship that had already formed between them..
Chapter 356 - 356: These Tails Must Be Eliminated
Chapter 356: These Tails Must Be Eliminated
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
You can inform them, but its up to them whether they believe it or not. And even if they dont believe it, dont tell anyone about me. Otherwise, I wont care about the alliance agreement or anything. Dont me me for falling out with you.
MO Ruyue said without a care.
Ever since Gu Ying returned to her side, there was nothing that could make her afraid. At most, she would just bring her babies into the medium and make herst weak spot disappear.
In her previous life, she and Gu Ying had destroyed a medium-sized country and countless organizations that made people tremble with fear. They had won with a small number of people and were all experts. She didnt believe that the Xiao and Ouyang families wouldnt think about it carefully.
Okay, thank you, Lady Qin. Then are you going to pick up the young masters and youngdies personally, or do you want me to arrange it?
Bai Jinshang handled all the negotiations with MO Ruyue, while Bai Shiyuan watched and learned silently from the side.
He stillcked experience and unique vision when doing things. His father could not follow him for his entire life, so he had to learn everything. Master Bai, the sooner the better. Send them back to the Qin Vige first. I will clean up the loose ends on the way and then meet up with you.
MO Ruyue had already nned it out. She knew that there would definitely be people keeping an eye on the Bai familys movements, so they had to get rid of the tail.
How about this, this old man will also transfer the property to the capitals Huishang Bank. At that time, you only need to take my Bai familys token and you can withdraw it. Leaving it here will inevitably be destroyed by natural disasters, and its too cumbersome to carry it with you. What do you think?
Alright, well do as you say then. Ill go out of the city and wait for you, but dont be toote.
MO Ruyue agreed to Bai Jinshangs proposal. She was not greedy for money, but the Bai family and the Ouyang family had joined hands to give her something extraordinary. It would be a pity to destroy it.
ording to her temperament, if she directly put it into the space, it was guaranteed that she would not lose it or destroy it. However, it would be very troublesome if the Bai family and the Ouyang family investigated it in order to give her an exnation.
When she went to the capital in the future, it wouldnt be toote to put everything into the space after she had taken them out.
Theres one more thing, its about Imperial Doctor Tian.
MO Ruyue added. She thought about it and felt that Imperial Doctor Tian wouldnt be able to go far on his own. It was best to ask the Bai family to take care of him.
Lady Qin, dont worry. As long as its someone you arranged, our Bai family will take full responsibility. We just need him to say your name.
Bai Jinshang knew what MO Ruyue was trying to do and didnt even need MO Ruyue to exin things clearly.
Very good. Ill leave it to you then, Master Bai.
After the discussion with Bai Jinshang, MO Ruyue nodded slightly to the father and son and left the restaurant.
Next, she still had to inform Imperial Doctor Tian and Du Zhongheng.
No matter what, he was still the childrens teacher. However, she would only leave a message and would not personally appear to inform him. If he did not believe her, then she could only say that she had done her best.
After that, Nio Ruyue arrived at the Tian residence with ease. Speaking of which, she really hadnt had the time to visit Imperial Doctor Tian during this period of time, so she took advantage of today to finish her work.
Imperial Doctor Tian had yet to clear his name and was considered to be on medical parole. Logically speaking, it was impossible for him to leave the county.
However, with the Bai family pulling the strings behind the scenes, there was no such thing as impossible.
MO Ruyue quietlynded in the courtyard and saw that the light in the study was still on. Imperial Doctor Tians figure was reflected on the window and he seemed to be writing something.
She quietly walked to the window and gently knocked on it three times.
The person inside quickly stood up and walked over. When he pushed open the window to take a look, his face immediately revealed a surprised expression. Lady Qin, why are you here? Its sote, whats the matter?
Just now, MO Ruyue had used the secret code that she had agreed on with
Imperial Doctor Tian. It was to use this secret code to contact Imperial Doctor Tian in case of an unexpected situation that she didnt want others to find out. Today, it came in handy.
Imperial Doctor Tian, Ill make a long story short. A natural disaster might befall today, and the county city will be the center of the disaster. Its best for you to take your family and leave this ce to seek refuge. As long as you go to Guani Towers Manager Bai, he will arrange everything.
MO Ruyue didnt have time to exin in detail. The Bai familys actions were very fast, and they would soon send the children out of the city.
Lady Qin, is this true?
Imperial Doctor Tian subconsciously asked and immediately shook his head, Youre not someone who would lie. Since you said it, then it really is.
He had been dealing with MO Ruyue for at least half a year. The thing he was most proud of in his life was that he was very urate in judging people, so it could be said that he knew her character very well.
He didnt even think much about it before hepletely believed such unbelievable words.
The other people in the Huichun Hall Forget it, can I bring a few more people?
Imperial Doctor Tian also knew that he wouldnt be able to save everyone. On the contrary, he would only bring trouble to MO Ruyue, so he only asked with hope.
If its Dong Qing and the others, its fine, but for the others, forget it,
MO Ruyue was naturally talking about the most trustworthy people. There was nothing to say about their medical ethics, skills, and character. As for the others, Imperial Doctor Tian would have his own standards of judgment.
Alright, Ill be very careful about this. When will you leave?
Imperial Doctor Tian was asking the most crucial questions.
Tomorrow evening, Ill have the Bai family send someone to pick you up.
MO Ruyue turned to look at the sky. She didnt know if it was her imagination, but the stars in this winter seemed to be a little too bright.
MO Ruyue went to Du Zhonghengs house again, but unfortunately, he was not at home.
She still left a note and even changed the handwriting so that he couldnt determine her identity from the handwriting.
After doing all this, MO Ruyue quietly left the city and met up with Gu Ying who was waiting outside the city, ready to wee the babies.
Two hourster, the county gate suddenly opened, and a carriage slowly drove out.
lhe carriage had the Bai familys symbol on it, and it was the carriage that sent babies back to the Shen Vige.
Not long after the carriage passed, a few more ck figures jumped over the wall andnded far behind the carriage.
The tail appeared.
MO Ruyue didnt know if these people were targeting the Bai family or her, or both, but no matter what, these people must be eliminated.
The Bai familys carriage was moving slowly on the official road. It had just snowed not long ago, and the road was covered with frozen ice and snow. In addition, it was dark and the light was not good. If they drove the carriage quickly, there would definitely be an ident.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying had already wrapped the hooves of their horses with thick cotton in advance, which meant that the horses were not affected at all. They could move quickly on the road without making any sound.
Even so, they abandoned the horses for the time being and let the two ck horses follow them while they caught up with the tails in front of them without anyone knowing.
Ill be third on the left.
Gu Ying made a hand gesture.
Ill be second from the right.
MO Ruyue also returned a gesture.
The two of them pounced forward at the same time.
A few cold lights shed and MO Ruyue ended the battle with two silver needles. When she stopped, Gu Yings foot just happened to kick the face of thest person.
A heavy body fell to the ground, but it didnt cause any dust to fly.
Lets not interrogate them yet. Well catch up with the babies first.
With a wave of his hand, MO Ruyue kept all the unconscious tails into the medium. In order to prevent them from waking up halfway, she specially added a drug to ensure that they would be in a deeper and longera..
Chapter 357 - 357: Mother Is Back!
Chapter 357: Mother Is Back!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Bing Er, its not good for me to appear in front of them now, right?
Gu Ying asked with some hesitation.
Originally, MO Ruyue had nned to give the babies a heads up before letting him appear. However, ns did not change as quickly as changes. In this situation where she did not know when the natural disaster woulde, there was not much time left for her to prepare.
No, lets meet them tonight. I need you to go somewhere with me, and Ill bring the babies with me.
For some reason, MO Ruyue suddenly thought of the mirror space behind the valley of treasures. That was definitely an alternate space simr to the spiritual spring space. Perhaps they could escape the natural disaster there.
She also had a vague guess that she might be able to find some rted clues there, because looking at the direction the wolves were running in, they might be heading toward the valley of treasures.
Alright, Ill listen to you.
Gu Ying nodded. Since Bing Er asked him to meet the babies now, then so be it.
Anyway, they would always be going the same way.
The two of them cleaned up the people following behind them and continued to wait at the same spot for more than an hour. After confirming that there was no second wave of people chasing them, they mounted their horses again and chased in the direction of the Qin Vige.
Even though they were far behind, the two of them easily caught up to the Bai familys carriage.
The carriage was still moving at a steady pace. They were already very close to the Qin Vige. MO Ruyue was not in a hurry to take over the carriage. Instead, she continued to follow behind and listen to the conversationing from the carriage.
Big Brother, where are we now? Its so dark outside, I cant see anything clearly.
Big Brother, Uncle Bai said that Mother has returned, but where is she now?
Big Brother, why are we suddenly going back to Qin vige? Arent we waiting for Mother to celebrate the Lantern Festival together?
Big Brother, I want to go back and y with Sister Jiaojiao
The four kids were talking at once, but Da Bao didnt say a word.
As MO Ruyue listened to the babies voices, she introduced Gu Ying to the people who were talking. However, he had already heard the babies voices when he was recuperating at her house, so he could easily match them.
Thats strange. Why isnt Da Bao saying anything?
MO Ruhan did not hear Da Baos reply. This was not like him.
Although Da Bao was a very quiet person, he would never avoid his younger siblings questions, so his current situation was very unusual.
No matter how worried he was, MO Ruyue still held back. No matter what happened, it wouldnt be toote to talk about it when they got home.
When the carriage arrived at the entrance of the Qin Vige, the dogs in the vige started barking. However, after two or three barks, it turned into a wave of mournful wuwu sounds and then returned to silence.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying released the pressure from their bodies almost at the same time, causing the dogs to shut their mouths in time and not wake the sleeping vigers.
The carriage silently stopped outside MO Ruyues house. The Liu couple alighted first, and then the babies were taken off the carriage one by one.
The coachman lit a few more torches to illuminate the babies, and then helped the Liu couple move things into the house.
These were all the things that the babies had brought to Bai residence. They had received many gifts over the past few days, and almost everyone had a huge box.
The boxes were all ced in the trailer that was hung on the back of the carriage, and they were piled up into a mountain.
MO Ruyue watched from afar and couldnt help but sigh.
They went empty-handed, but they did note back empty-handed.
The small courtyard was very lively for a while. After all, no one hade back to stay for so many days, and there was too much to clean up.
Fortunately, with the help of the coachman and the Liu couple, everything was proceeding in an orderly manner.
Youre not going back?
Gu Ying asked.
MO Ruyue had been sitting on her horse and watching for a long time, as if she had been lost in thought.
Yes, I was just thinking about their reaction when they see you.
MO Ruyue thought of another problem that she had overlooked. She turned to look at Gu Ying helplessly and said, I seem to have forgotten something very important.
I told the babies that I was going to cancel my marriage with their father, but now Im bringing you home. I wonder what theyll think.
She scratched her head and said hesitantly. If I were vou. I would probably rebel on the spot.
I look like their real father. Thats why you tried so hard not to let me meet the babiesst time. Isnt that my advantage?
Gu Ying had never been a father before, so he could only follow his feelings and ask.
Thats why its terrible!
What if they misunderstand that we started it then? MO Ruyue said, annoyed.
Gu Ying was stunned for a moment, and then a faint smile appeared in his eyes.
Start what? He teased.
Dont mess around, its annoying to be serious!
MO Ruyue could hear his teasing, but she wasnt in the mood to respond.
It was her negligence. If she didnt think about this problem properly, there would be problems to solve in the future.
No, natural disasters dont wait for people. Theres really no time to slowly build up. Gu Ying, the eldest and the second have a deeper impression of their biological father. The three younger ones are a littlecking. The youngest, Tang Tang, has never seen him at all.
So, no matter what kind of emotional catharsis you encounter next, it wont be strange. You have to be prepared for this.
Now, MO Ruyue was starting to give Gu Ying a heads up.
After all, he was a mentally strong adult and would not stoop to the level of a group of babies.
Dont worry.
Gu Yings smile did not fade. The two of them dismounted from their horses and led them to the MO familys small courtyard.
Da Bao, lets get ready to take our little brothers for a bath.
Aunt Lius voice came from the courtyard, followed by a series of footsteps.
MO Ruyue immediately quickened her pace and knocked on the courtyard door. She casually said, Aunt Liu, open the door. Its me.
Mother? Its Mother who has returned!
San Bao was the first to respond. His footsteps were even faster than his voice, and the door opened almost in the next second.
Mother!
San Bao saw that it was indeed MO Ruyue standing outside the door. He was about to jump into her arms when he saw Gu Ying standing beside her, and his eyes immediately widened.
San Bao, whats the matter? Let Mother in!
Er Baos puzzled voice came from the courtyard. Third brother had greeted his mother first, but why was this person standing at the door and not moving?
Second Brother
San Bao turned to look at Er Bao, his eyes filled with confusion.
Anyone who saw their own mother returning home with a strange man in the middle of the night would probably have doubts in their hearts.
Ruyue, what are you doing outside? Come in quickly.
Aunt Liu had already entered the bathroom to adjust the water temperature. When she heard the unusual movement outside, she quickly came out to see what was going on.
San Bao, lets talk inside. Oh, thats right, call him Uncle Gu Ying.
MO Ruyue very naturally pointed at Gu Ying, as if introducing him to the third baby.
I Uncle Gu Ying.
San Bao was in a state ofplete confusion. He subconsciously followed MO Ruyues words and called out to Gu Ying. He didnt even know what he had just said.
San Bao, I know you.
The moment Gu Ying spoke, San Baos eyes became even more confused.
He seemed to have heard this voice before..
Chapter 358 - 358: The Honest Truth
Chapter 358: The Honest Truth
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue didnt give him the chance to think too much. She held San Baos shoulder and turned him over, pushing him into the courtyard. She happened to meet Aunt Liu and Er Bao who were walking over.
Ruyue, this This is
Aunt Liu was also shocked when she suddenly saw a man beside MO Ruyue.
She had suffered such a huge blow, let alone the others.
Er Baos reaction was even worse than San Bao i s. He opened his mouth so wide that even flies and mosquitoes could fly in.
Lets talkter, lets go in first.
MO Ruyue had already expected the Liu couple and their babies reactions to be very exaggerated, but she had still underestimated the effect of the exaggeration.
Especially when the other three babies came out of the room, the situation was a little out of control.
Father!
A voice that sounded like it was breaking could be heard, and in the next second, a figure flew toward Gu Ying.
Er Bao!
Da Bao, who had juste out of the house, could not stop him in time. He could only watch as his second brother pounced on the man standing in the courtyard.
Gu Ying neither dodged nor refused. Instead, he hugged the boy in his arms, and at the same time, a strange feeling welled up in his heart.
It was soft and sore, and his chest felt a little tight, but there was also a feeling
Was this the feeling of being a father?
Father, why did you onlye back now? I miss you so much!
Er Bao hugged Gu Ying tightly, even his legs were on his legs, like an octopus that had been clinging to its prey.
Gu Ying turned to look at MO Ruyue. He had never encountered such a situation and didnt know how to deal with it.
MO Ruyue shook her head at him, indicating that he should calm Er Bao down first.
Gu Ying hesitated for a moment, but he still reached out his hand and slowly touched the top of Er Baos head.
A soft touch came from his palm, melting Gu Yings cold and hard heart.
No wonder MO Ruyue was so thoroughly separated from the dark life. If he was always surrounded by a group of children like this, he would not be willing to return to the dark.
For some reason, Gu Ying suddenly remembered what had happened when he was renting a house in that small mountain vige. At that time, the elderly and children in the vige were never afraid of the cold he was covered in. Every time they saw him, they would show a bright smile.
The children would also give him some small gifts from time to time. Whether it was a bunch of flowers, a few grasshoppers, or a handful of wild fruits, they were all sincere hearts that they had brought out.
The feeling that Gu Ying could not understand at that time suddenly became extremely clear and profound at this moment.
Mother, isnt he Uncle Gu Ying? Why did Second Brother call him father?
San Bao raised his head and looked at MO Ruyue. He waspletely stunned by Er Baos shout.
Although he felt a sense of familiarity and closeness when he saw Uncle Gu Ying, he couldnt associate the person in front of him with his father. He was so tall, his figure was like an unattainable mountain peak.
He was so handsome that no man he had ever seen couldpare to him.
There was also a faint, cold fragrance on his body. It was a smell that he had never had before in his memory.
Could this man really be his father?
But he Wasnt he already dead?
Qin Qingduo, get off uncle. Hes not your father. His name is Gu Ying.
MO Ruyue called Er Baos full name, which meant that her attitude was very serious.
Aunt Liu was also stunned as she watched from the side. She could not imagine how things would develop next.
At the start, she really thought that Qin Ming was back but after looking closely, she realized that he was apletely different person.
Although Qin Ming was also a quiet person, he didnt give people the feeling of being cold at all. The man in front of her not only had a cold aura, but also an aura that couldnt be hidden.
This was an extremely dangerous man. This was what Aunt Liu judged based on her decades of life experience. However, what she couldnt understand was how MO Ruyue knew such a man and even brought him home.
She didnt even mind letting the babies interact with him. What was going on?
Soon, everyone gathered in the babies study room, including the Liu couple.
Originally, they wanted to avoid it. After all, this was MO Ruyues private matter. Even if they couldnt understand, they didnt have the right to interfere. They didnt expect her to ask the couple to stay.
Uncle Liu, Aunt Liu, Ive treated both of you as real uncles and aunts, so I dont want to hide this matter from you. Or perhaps Ill have to exin it a second time, so Ill just tell you both this time.
When she said this, the Liu couple also stayed. Although they also felt a little embarrassed, they were more or less relieved that MO Ruyue had acknowledged them.
Mother, whats going on here? Hes not my father from outside, so what does it have to do with you?
Everyone had just taken their seats and MO Ruyue had yet to speak when Da Bao immediately asked.
His expression was gloomy and his brows were tightly furrowed. He stared unkindly at Gu Ying, clearly full of hostility.
He is indeed not your father. He is just someone who looks very simr, but he is the most important person to Mother.
MO Ruyue said frankly and did not avoid Da Baos gaze.
She couldnt exin to her babies about reincarnation. Perhaps there would be some kind of opportunity in the future for them to be honest with each other, but now was not the time.
Youre breaking off your marriage with my father for this man?
Da Bao immediately asked the second question.
His questions were all direct and sharp, with no room for escape.
No, Ive already had this thought before this. Ive never even met your father, and I cant be a widow for the rest of my life for a stranger.
Even if he didnt appear, I would still break off my marriage with your father. Nothing will change about this.
MO Ruyue answered without any hesitation. Things had always been like this.
She would not go against her own heart and give the so-called white lie to make Da Bao feel more at ease.
Was this the uncle who recuperated at our housest time?
Da Bao asked the third question of the night. His eyes were sharper and more direct, as if he had already known everything.
Yes, and thest time was not the first time I saved him, but the second time. MO Ruyue still answered this question without hesitation.
Da Bao was an extremely sensitive person. If there was a trace of hesitation in her answer, he would notice it. If he found out that she was lying in the future, things would be even more difficult to deal with.
It was better to be honest from the beginning and then slowly untie the knot in his heart.
This time, Da Bao suddenly stopped asking questions and looked at MO Ruyue silently. No one knew what he was thinking.
Is this the reason why you dont allow the outside world to have any contact with him?
Da Bao asked onest question after a while.
Look at his appearance. What would happen if I let you see him?
This time, it was MO Ruyue who asked in return. When she first found out that Gu Ying and Qin Ming looked very simr, her first instinct was that she couldnt let the babies see his appearance.
When they suddenly saw someone who looked like their father, the shock they received would only be more than what they felt now..
Chapter 359 - 359: Tacit Understanding
Chapter 359: Tacit Understanding
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The Liu couple also listened quietly at the side. They agreed with MO Ruyues method of hiding the truth back then, but because of this, they were even more unable to understand what she was doing now.
The current result is not necessarily better.
Sure enough, Da Bao had the same thought. He nced at the other babies meaningfully so that MO Ruyue could see the expressions on their faces.
Needless to say, Er Baos face also had an extremelyplicated expression.
Because San Bao i s impression of him was very vague, his face was filled with confusion.
As for Si Bao and Tang Tang, they had no impression of Qin Ming at all. They had only heard that this man looked very simr to their father, so they were more curious and had a faint sense of closeness.
MO Ruyue turned to look at Gu Ying again, and then met his soft and warm eyes. She couldnt help but smile back.
In the eyes of the babies and the Liu couple, there was one thing that they all agreed on, and that was that other than them, they had never seen MO Ruyue smile like this at other strangers.
So, was this strange man really the most important person to her, as she said?
Originally, I thought of bringing Gu Ying to you slowly in a few days, because hell always be with us in the future.
However, a very serious disaster is about to happen. I need Gu Yings help, and I dont have time for you to get used to it. Thats why I brought him to you
tonight. I
If anyone still has any questions in their hearts, you must speak up and let Mother know. I will exin it to you clearly.
For MO Ruyue to be able to say these words, she was already putting the babies on an equal level with her. She was not speaking as a mother and children, but more like a friend who was honest with each other.
Tonight might be thest seemingly peaceful night, so she had to take this opportunity to make things clear and not let any possible misunderstandings arise.
Mother, will this uncle be our new father in the future?
When Tang Tang opened her mouth, she would definitely shock the world!
MO Ruyue s anger was extinguished by the direct question. She felt a strong gaze chasing her, as if it was going to burn her.
The Liu couple already knew the answer. This man would definitely be the babies new father. After all, there would not be a second man who could get so close to MO Ruyue.
Back then, Du Zhongheng was so close to MO Ruyue that they could all see his thoughts. If she didnt believe it, she wouldnt have felt it herself.
Looking at the past, and looking at the present, such a sharp contrast still couldnt exin everything.
Tang Tang was still blinking her eyes, waiting for MO Ruyues reply. She didnt seem to realize that this question was difficult to answer.
Thats right. There will be such a day in the future, Tang Tang.
A deep male voice rang out and directly answered the question on behalf of MO Ruyue.
The one who spoke was naturally Gu Ying, and his gaze had always been fixed on MO Ruyue, never leaving for a moment.
Yes, thats what will happen.
For some reason, MO Ruyue suddenly felt a little shy. Her face was slightly hot, and she was even a little embarrassed to look at her babies expressions.
However, after she calmed her racing heart, she took a deep breath and gave a positive response.
Oh, oh. Then can I call him Father now?
Tang Tang almost jumped up and asked impatiently.
MO Ruyue choked and suddenly had the feeling of holding her forehead.
Gu Yings eyes curved slightly as he thought of the saying daughter ve in his previous life.
No wonder all those men wanted to be ves to their daughters. So this was the feeling of having a sweet little cotton-padded jacket?
The Liu couple didnt know whether tough or cry as they looked at Tang Tang. Now, she had be the matchmaker by MO Ruyues side and had begun to build a bridge for their mother.
However, she seemed to have forgotten one thing. Her mother had yet to dissolve the marriage with her father.
Tang Tang, dont talk nonsense. Youre so rude!
Da Bao said with a frown. He seemed to be educating Tang Tang, but he was actually rejecting her suggestion.
Alright, I only know that this matter has a huge impact on you guys, so Ill give you guys time to slowly digest this news. But one thing will not change, and that is that Uncle Gu Ying will be with us in the future.
MO Ruyues words could be considered as a conclusion to tonights matter, and it also meant that she would not change her decision after making it.
Mother, were going to take a bath.
Da Bao was the first one to stand up and leave, followed by Er Bao. He looked at Gu Ying as if he wanted to say something, but in the end, he just shook his head and left with his brother.
Mother, I want to shower with you.
Tang Tang walked to MO Ruyues side and made her request.
In the past, whenever MO Ruyue was at home, Tang Tang would stick to her side like a little shadow.
Whether it was bathing or sleeping, the mother-daughter pair was always together.
As MO Ruyue became busier and busier, the time she had to spend with the babies became less and less. So every time she had free time, Tang Tang would stick to her even more.
Alright, Mother will bring you to take a bath in a while, then well go to bed early, alright?
This time, MO Ruyue didnt leave them for as long as before, but Tang Tangs clingy attitude towards her today was particrly different. She was keenly aware of this and gave a decisive response.
Lady Qin, how about this, lets invite this Gu Mr. Gu Ying, pleasee to my house. My son and daughter-inws room has been empty, so itll be fine to stay in after a little tidying up.
Aunt Liu looked at Gu Ying and suggested.
No matter what the rtionship between the two would be in the future, it was still necessary to avoid it for now. After all, not only was gossip a fearful thing, but the feelings of the babies should also be taken into consideration.
Then Ill have to thank Aunt Liu for her concern.
Thank you, Aunt Liu.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying thanked Aunt Liu almost at the same time. When they saw the tacit understanding between the two, the Liu couple sighed in their hearts at the same time.
No wonder this man was the most important person to MO Ruyue as she had said. The tacit atmosphere between them could not be cultivated in one or two years.
However, there was a problem. MO Ruyue had been married to the Qin family for many years. Could it be that the two had known each other before she was married?
Then why was it that thest time Gu Ying was recuperating here, they acted as if they were strangers?
They couldnt figure out the answer, but they didnt want to know the answer.
After all, this was someone elses private matter. Even if they had MO Ruyues approval to be a family, they should still pay attention to the problem of propriety.
When the Liu couple left, they also took Gu Ying with them. The MO familys small courtyard also gradually became quiet.
After taking a warm bath with Tang Tang, MO Ruyue told her a few stories and quickly coaxed her to sleep.
She didnt feel sleepy at all. Obviously, she was not the only one in the family who had the same idea.
Judging from the breathing soundsing from the room next door, MO Ruyue judged that only San Bao and Si Bao were asleep, while the brothers, Da Bao and Er Bao, were tossing and turning in bed, unable to fall asleep.
The two brothers were not in the same room. Instead, they each brought a younger one to sleep in a room. At that time, it was for the convenience of taking care of the younger brother, but now it seemed that there were other benefits.
If the two of them were in the same room, what topic would they be talking about now? It should be about Gu Ying.
MO Ruyue thought to herself..
Chapter 360 - 360: The Best Memory
Chapter 360: The Best Memory
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The people who were the most affected by this incident would definitely be Da
Bao and his brother. After all, they still clearly remembered the memories of
Qin Ming.
When the news of Qin Mings sacrifice for the county came, the one who was the most sorrowful wasnt the original owner, MO Ruyue, but these two older boys.
To them, their father was the mountain that they could rely on. Once this mountain copsed, their hero would be gone.
Now that Gu Ying who looked like their father had suddenly appeared and was even going to rece their fathers position, it would be strange if these two brothers emotions did not explode.
Gu Ying should have thought of this problem as well, and was thinking of a solution, right?
MO Ruyue couldnt help but think.
She only started to learn to be a mother after she came to this world, but she had no experience in dealing with boys who were about to enter puberty.
At that time, she and Gu Ying had also supported each other from that age, but at that time, Gu Ying was not rebellious at all. The only thing they had to think about was how to survive.
Without a case to refer to, MO Ruyue only felt a headache.
It was not easy to be a stepmother, and it was not much better to be a stepfather either. She would let Gu Ying have a headache first. As for her, she would first consider the problem of the natural disaster.
All kinds of thoughts kept shing through MO Ruyues mind, but she didnt feel sleepy at all. At this moment, she suddenly turned over and looked out of the window alertly.
There was no mistaking it. Although the cold wind was howling outside, there was also the faint sound of wolves howling.
Could it be that the wolf pack hade down the mountain again?
She thought of thest time when Gu Ying appeared, the wolves were about to enter the vige to wee him. This time, they must have sensed his return, so they came to wee him again.
MO Ruyue quickly put on her clothes and left the room without waking Tang Tang up.
She had just stood still in the courtyard when she saw Gu Ying climb over the wall and enter the courtyard.
Gu Ying, you heard the wolves cries?
Now that MO Ruyue had already cleansed Gu Yings body, his five senses were even better than hers, so it wasnt strange at all that he could hear the wolf howls.
Yes, I knew you woulde out to take a look, so I came to find you.
As the two of them spoke, they were already He flew over the wall and ran directly to the back of the mountain.
However, even after they reached the back of the vige and even entered the forest, they did not find any traces of the wolf pack.
If the wolves listened to MO Ruyues words and wouldnt easily enter the vige, then they should be waiting in the forest behind the mountain. Could it be that there was another reason for their howls just now?
After the two entered the forest, they ran in the direction of the wolf howls.
It was strange to say that ever since MO Ruyue left Xu City with Gu Ying, the bone whistle she had on her body had not emitted any infrasonic waves.
In the past, whenever MO Ruyue entered the forest, one or a few wolves woulde to wee her as if they had already predicted her arrival.
This time, she had been in the mountains for so long, but the wolf howls were always far away, as if they were taking her somewhere.
Gu Ying, it seems that I made the right decision toe back. The wolves are leading us to the valley of treasures.
MO Ruyue said to Gu Ying as she ran.
Is it the valley of treasures that you said is filled with rare herbs?
At that time, Gu Ying had only heard MO Ruyue mention it briefly, but he waspletely unclear about the specific situation. He didnt expect to have the opportunity to see that valley of treasures now.
As he spoke, MO Ruyue had already arrived at the entrance of the valley of treasures with great familiarity. The surrounding forest suddenly lit up with spots of jade-green mes. Upon closer inspection, it was a giant wolf slowly walking out of the forest.
ck Wolf King, did you summon me to this ce?
MO Ruyue couldnt help but ask as she looked at the huge ck wolf walking in front.
It was a pity that she didnt understand thenguage of beasts. Otherwise, she would definitely know what kind of message the ck wolf king was trying to send her.
The ck wolfs eyes revealed a trace of sadness and fear. It seemed to have sensed the impending danger and predicted the fate of the wolf pack.
MO Ruyue knew that animals were a few hundred times more sensitive to danger than humans, so they would react in various ways before natural disasters struck.
Seeing the wolf king acting like this, as if he had predicted that the wolf pack would end up in a tragic state, MO Ruyue was even more confused.
They could have run far away from here, but why would they rather die here than leave? Could it be that they wanted to continue protecting the valley of treasures.
The ck wolf king slowly walked to MO Ruyues side. It first licked the back of her hand, then turned around to lick Gu Ying.
It seemed to be farewell.
MO Ruyue could read its meaning from its bodynguage. Suddenly, sorrow welled up in her heart, and her throat felt a little choked.
I dont understand why you dont leave or go to the mirror valley behind the valley of treasures. You know the way, so there shouldnt be any danger there.
She recalled thest time she entered the mirror valley, and now she was more and more certain that she had entered an alternate dimension like the
spiritual spring space.
Since they were not in the same space, the natural disasters in this world could not hurt them.
The ck wolf king just looked at MO Ruyue quietly, her figure reflected in its icy blue eyes, as ifforting her silently.
Bing Er, dont be so sad. Its not the end yet.
Gu Ying walked behind MO Ruyue and reached out to gently stroke her hair.
They were both once cold-hearted people. For a long time, they relied on each other for survival, and the most important thing to them was each other.
Now, they had many more in their lives. Five babies, two kind old people, two dark horses, and arge pack of giant wolves.
There were more and more things that they couldnt let go of. Although these were fatal weaknesses to MO Ruyue and Gu Ying in the past, they were now their best memories.
So he could empathize with her current mood, the feeling of helplessly watching without knowing how to help.
Yes, the disaster hasnt started yet. Theres still time.
MO Ruyue stood up. If the wolf pack didnt want to enter the mirror valley, she could just put them into her space. Who said there was no other way to deal with it?
You didnt summon us here just to say goodbye, right? Then Ill bring Gu Ying in.
MO Ruyue tried to probe.
The ck wolf king wagged its tail, walked straight to the side, and squatted down, making way for him.
Lets go, Gu Ying. It seems that the ck wolf king really wants me to take you to the mirror valley. Lets go and have a look. Maybe we can find some clues.
MO Ruyue was worried about her babies who were still sleeping. She didnt know when the natural disaster woulde, so if she couldnt find any useful clues after exploring mirror valley, she would go back with her babies and the Liu couple and leave immediately.
Everyone she thought should have been informed had already been informed. As for the others, she really couldnt help even if she wanted to.
The two of them walked into the valley of treasures together. Without looking back, they knew that the wolves were following them.
The wolves followed them through the entire valley of treasures before they finally stopped at the entrance of the mirror valley. They were determined not to take another step in..
Chapter 361 - 361: A Matter Of Life And Death
Chapter 361: A Matter Of Life And Death
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue judged that these wolves were probably guarding the mysterious person in the mirror valley, and the mirror valley was the burial ground of that person, so the wolves stopped here.
The two of them had to walk on their own for the rest of the journey. Fortunately, MO Ruyue had all kinds of tools in her interspace, so she directly took out two cold-light shlights and walked into the cave with Gu Ying.
She didnt know if it was because Gu Ying was beside her, but this time, the tunnel waspleted very quickly. It didnt feel as long and strange as thest time she walked.
MO Ruyue was a little worried that when they reached the other side, they would suddenly find that the end of the tunnel was just an ordinary mountain valley and not mirror valley.
However, when she walked out of the cave, she found that her worries were unnecessary, and her previous spection was correct.
It was alreadyte at night in the valley of treasures, but the mirror valley was still as bright and colorful as thest time she came.
As expected, they are two different dimensions. If only I could have hidden here when the natural disaster came.
MO Ruyue looked around again, but Gu Ying didnt agree with her statement.
If it is really a meteorite shower, once the entrance on the other side of the tunnel copses, we will be trapped here forever. Even if we can dig or blow up the entrance to get out, how can we get out if the cliffs andvakes on the other side are destroyed?
His words caused MO Ruyue to instantly fall silent.
She had never thought of such a situation. Was this the reason why the wolves refused to enter the mirror valley?
If she was really trapped here, she had a space with all kinds of vegetables, food, and livestock, so she didnt have to worry about starving to death. The only regret was that her babies might never have a partner.
However, if the wolves were trapped here, without a source of food, they would definitely starve to death.
After careful analysis, MO Ruyue finally came to a conclusion. The mirror valley was definitely a safe ce to avoid natural disasters, but it was definitely not suitable for hiding.
There must be a reason why the wolves would bring them here, and they would have to find the reason themselves.
Lets go. Ill take you to see the owner of this ce.
MO Ruyue said as she pointed at the lonely tree in the distance.
She was suddenly stunned. Then, as if she had thought of something, she shed into her interspace. When she came out, she was holding a small box in her hand.
How could I have forgotten about this?
She opened the box and revealed a small golden grass.
Thest time I entered the mirror valley, the owner of this ce gave it to me.
But I dont think we can rely on this grass to resist the natural disaster, right?
Even Mo Ruyue felt that this conclusion was ridiculous after she finished speaking.
Even MO Ruyue felt that this conclusion was ridiculous after she finished speaking.
Even if she had the space for evolution, the spiritual spring water that could detoxify hundreds of poisons, and all kinds of heaven-defying bugs, she still couldnt ept the fact that this little grass was the key to resolving the natural disaster.
If that was the case, what should she do? When the meteorites fell, she would raise the grass high and order the meteorites to sweep across the or not tond?
Just imagining that scene made her speechless.
But no matter what, MO Ruyue still held the box and walked towards the giant tree in the middle of the valley with Gu Ying.
The person sitting under the tree was still the same as thest time she saw him.
After such a long time, it was as if he had just sat down cross-legged. There was not a speck of dust on his body, and his face was ruddy. Other than theck of breathing and heartbeat, he waspletely like a living person. Bing Er, is this the master of this ce you were talking about?
Gu Ying had already made a round of the surroundings, but he did not see anyone else. In the end, he turned his gaze back to that person. Yes, but I dont know the reason why he let me in this time.
MO Ruyue looked at that person in confusion and with good eyes.
Thest time, it was by ident that this grass appeared in that persons palm. Would it be the same this time?
However, after waiting for the time it took for an incense stick to burn, nothing appeared. MO Ruyue sighed. It seemed that no miracle could happen under her watch.
Lets go over there for a walk.
She suggested helplessly.
Lets look around. Maybe we can find something.
Rather than saying these words to Gu Ying, it would be better to say that they were said to that person.
Gu Ying understood and nodded, following MO Ruyue down the tree.
MO Ruyue wasnt just trying to avoid it, but she had really discovered something unusual.
Thest time she came back, the maple leaves were as red as blood, but this time, all the maple leaves had turned as white as snow.
When the pear blossoms bloomed, they covered the branches like snow, but the silver-white leaves were never heard of.
MO Ruyue tried to touch a leaf that was stretched out in front of him and suddenly turned to look at Gu Ying in surprise. Its ice-cold, snow!
Snow?
Gu Ying was also stunned.
The temperature and humidity in the valley were veryfortable, about 20 degrees.
In such high temperatures, even thick ice would have melted, let alone snow. How could there be a tree full of snow?
However, the existence of this valley was againstmon sense, so it was normal for something againstmon sense to happen.
Gu Ying walked over and carefully looked at the leaves on the tree. If he got closer, he could see that they were not leaves at all, but snowkes after they were erged.
Six-pointed, twelve-pointed, and even the pattern of each snowke was different.
Did you notice the color of the leaves when we came in? MO Ruyue suddenly asked.
Color? Its Red. Gu Ying said with certainty.
Then do you remember when it turned pure white? MO Ruyue continued to ask.
This time, Gu Ying was silent for a long time before finally shaking his head.
He was an assassin who was proficient in hot weapons, and observing the environment was his top priority. Whether it was him or MO Ruyue, this was a matter of life and death, so it was impossible for there to be any problems of negligence.
However, such an obvious target had turned from red to silver, and they had no impression of it at all. This situation was simply unbelievable.
Alright, I think we can go back now.
MO Ruyue said with understanding. She turned and walked straight to the person sitting cross-legged and squatted down. As expected, there was something else in his palm.
Ying, I think this is for you.
MO Ruyue pointed at a round ball that had appeared in the palm of that person and said to Gu Ying.
The ball looked like a night-luminescent pearl, or a miniature crystal ball. To describe it more vividly, it was a jade ball that many old people often yed with in their hands.
If you want to train your hand muscles more, there should be two balls. How are you going to do this one? She said, a little speechless.
The other one is here
Gu Ying pointed to a shadow under the mans knee. As expected, the same bead had rolled in.
It was as if the person had identally dropped one of the beads when he was preparing the gift.
So you really want to dribble?
This time, the two of them were speechless..
Chapter 362 - 362: Finally Seeing The Rainbow After The Storm
Chapter 362: Finally Seeing The Rainbow After The Storm
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue suddenly felt that the owner of the mirror valley should be a very cheerful and humorous person. The gift this time was really unexpected, and it even had a hint of ridicule.
However, what confused them the most was that they had not yet figured out the function of the grass. Now, there were two more literary balls. This really seemed like a prank.
Since Ive given it to you, why dont you ept it and have a drink with this senior? MO Ruyue asked.
Although he was speaking to Gu Ying, he was observing the person who was sitting cross -legged.
She felt that the persons lips had curled up a lot, and there were a few more fine lines at the corner of his eyes.
He He seemed to be smiling?
Even though she wasnt sure if her guess was correct, MO Ruyue still took out two jars of wine that she had specially brewed.
One jar was ced in front of that person, and the other was given to Gu
Ying.
Many thanks for Seniors gift. Junior will cherish and use it well.
Gu Ying first thanked the person, then took a big gulp of wine, and said, It would be great if you could tell me how to use the gift.
The person who was sitting cross-legged remained silent, not reacting to Gu Yings jar of wine.
Gu Ying had never been a talkative person, but he didnt know if it was because he was drunk or for some other reason, but he would say something every time he toasted.
MO Ruyue was not idle either. She drank a jar of wine with Gu Ying, but she was much quieter. She just drank one mouthful after another, and at the same time, she did not forget to look at the changes in the surrounding environment.
Just as the jar of wine was about to be finished, a strange phenomenon suddenly urred!
Dark clouds rolled and strong winds rose. The sky, which was originally cloudless, was instantly filled with dark gray clouds.
From behind the thick clouds, an orange-red me shot out, burning through the clouds, leaving a trail of thick smoke behind it as it crashed toward the ground.
A meteor shower!
He didnt expect that the natural disaster would affect this alternate dimension. What was it like outside now?
The twos expressions changed, and they subconsciously wanted to pull up the person sitting in front of them to dodge together.
Although he couldnt be taken outside, he could at least be brought into the corridor, in case his remains were hit by meteorites and destroyed.
However, Gu Yings pull didnt move it. Even with MO Ruyue, it still wouldnt work.
That person seemed to have already taken root in the ground. With the twos current divine power, they were actually unable to move him in the slightest.
Ying, no, this looks like an illusion!
MO Ruyue suddenly realized that the meteorites had been raining down for a long time, causing the earth and rocks around them to fly everywhere. The sea of fire spread, but it didnt hurt them at all. They didnt even feel the burning heat of the mes.
Its an illusion. Look at that tree.
Gu Ying pointed behind MO Ruyue.
The huge tree was covered in huge snowkes, but they didnt melt in such a high temperature. The herbs under the tree were still verdant and glistening, and there wasnt even a choking smell of dust in the air.
The two of them calmed down and began to carefully observe their surroundings.
This time, they felt like they were watching an InMax movie. They could already confirm that this was a rey of a disaster that had already happened.
They had also heard of this phenomenon several times in their previous lives. Some haunted ces would show some illusory figures and scenes.
Scientists had also given an exnation for this phenomenon. It was said that the local soil was rich in iron oxide, and the maic field was also abnormal, so some scenes would be recorded in stormy weather and then reproduced at some time.
This principle might not be able to exin the current apocalyptic scene. Soon, the two of them found the reason for the reappearance of the apocalypse.
A man with long hair and a loose robe walked over slowly. He was obviously moving very slowly, but he had already arrived in front of them in a few shes.
His hair covered more than half of his face, and one could only judge from his straight nose and firm chin that he should be an extremely handsome man.
The meteor shower had ended, and he was slowly walking through a mountain of corpses and a sea of blood.
Smoke and poison gas mixed with sparks flew all over the sky. However, when the man walked over and raised a jade bead in his hand, the smoke and poison gas were pushed away by ayer of hazy green light.
Relying on that jade bead, the white-robed man had saved many people from the purgatory-like Asura Arena.
Gu Ying, is this the jade bead youre holding?
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying turned their eyes at the same time and looked at the two jade balls in his hands.
It was exactly the same size and color. Other than the fact that it did not emit a faint green light, the bead in the illusion was no different from the one in the lonely shadows hand.
In other words, one of the jade stone balls could avoid fire, smoke, and poison, but the other jade stone ball had never been used. It must be an extraordinary item.
Next, the white-robed man walked to a contaminated water source and ced the golden grass in it. In just a cup of teas time, the dirty poisonous water became clear and transparent again, which was better than any disinfectant and bleach.
With these two treasures, the white-robed man saved countless people. In the illusion, day and night alternated several times, and it seemed that more than a month had passed before he floated away and sessfully retreated before dawn.
MO Ruyue turned back to look at the person sitting cross-legged. Even if the white-robed mans face in the illusion was never clearly seen, she could still judge from the outline of his nose and chin that they were the same person.
However, in the records of Xu City, there had not been such a natural disaster for at least hundreds of years. Even if there was, there should have been some traces left behind.
Therefore, it was impossible to determine the year of the meteorite shower, but this person must have been a figure from hundreds of years ago. It was incredible that his remains were still so well preserved.
MO Ruyue even felt that this person was still alive, and had only be like this for some unknown reason.
Perhaps it was because he had predicted that the meteorites would rain again, but he had no way to go out and save people, so he summoned her and Gu Ying toe here and entrust the treasure to them, so that they coulde out and save people in his ce.
This thought grew stronger and stronger in her heart. She even had a feeling that the person was smiling at her in approval. Bing Er, I think we should get out of here.
Gu Ying said softly.
The illusion had slowly disappeared and finally returned to the original scene.
The sky in the valley was as blue as a mirror, and the grass was as green as a nket. After the illusion just now, flowers bloomed in the entire valleys herbal field.
Goose yellow, pink purple, sky blue, orange red, it was like a beautiful flower carpet spread all over the valley, the breeze brought a wave of medicinal
fragrance
Was this a hint that there would be a rainbow after the storm?
No matter what, it was time to leave.
They already knew how to use the treasures in their hands. Natural disasters were inevitable, but to be able to save a life from the hands of the king of hell, to them, who were once top assassins, it was an extraordinary feeling. Before they left, the two of them knelt down in front of the person and respectfully kowtowed three times.
No matter who he was or what his identity was, even if he had saved so many people from thest natural disaster, he was worth the three heads of the two of them..
Chapter 363 - 363: Directly Entered The Rebellious Stage
Chapter 363: Directly Entered The Rebellious Stage
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When MO Ruyue walked to the entrance of the cave, she couldnt help but look back and see the leaves on the giant tree melt in an instant.
Only bare branches were left, as if waiting for a revival of life.
If wee back next time, we should be able to see a color as green as jade,
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying looked at each other and smiled. They quickly left the mirror valley.
The giant wolves were still guarding the entrance of the valley. MO Ruyue walked up and squatted in front of the ck wolf king. She reached out and stroked its head, advising earnestly, All of you, follow me.
Although she didnt have much contact with the wolf pack, she couldnt let them stay here and suffer.
Her interspace was the safest ce to go. The interspace was vast, and there was no end to it. It could fit the entire Xu City, let alone a pack of wolves.
The ck wolf king shook its head and whimpered, refusing her suggestion.
They were the guardians of this ce, and it was impossible for them to abandon their mission and leave without permission, even if they had to pay the price with their lives.
If you were protecting the senior inside, I dont think he would let you die in the natural disaster.
MO Ruyue nced in the direction of the mirror valley. How could a person who disregarded his own safety to save the world in the illusion watch the giant wolf pack who had protected him for hundreds of years meet with misfortune?
The ck wolf king suddenly turned to look at the passage leading to the mirror valley. Even though it had never entered it, it did not stop it from hearing the soundsing from inside.
MO Ruyue could only tell that it was a kind of rhythmic infrasonic wave, but she didnt understand what it meant. Perhaps the senior was giving the ck wolf king some instructions.
When the sound wave disappeared, the ck wolf king wagged its tail at MO Ruyue again. This time, it looked much more energetic, and its eyes were bright again.
As expected, it was that senior who gave them freedom.
If there was still hope, who would be willing to walk helplessly toward death?
After the ck wolf king howled a few times, all the other wolves followed suit and jumped for joy. For a moment, the entire valley of treasures was echoing with wolf howls.
MO Ruyue seemed to be infected by their happiness and couldnt help but smile. She snuggled up to Gu Ying beside her.
She felt honored to be able to help the wolves.
At this moment, the ck wolf king suddenly bit Mo Ruyues sleeve and pulled her toward the rare herbs in the valley. It even made a gesture of digging the ground with its front paws.
You want me to take all of these with me?
MO Ruyue understood its bodynguage and instantly understood that this might also be that persons intention.
After the natural disaster, it would definitely be a tragic scene. Although the golden grass could filter the dirt and toxins in the water, an astronomical number of herbs would definitely be used.
The herbs in the valley of treasures were all expensive and above. There werent many herbs that could stop bleeding and remove blood clots, but the effects of expensive herbs were iparable to ordinary herbs.
Besides, rather than letting such spiritual medicine be destroyed by a natural disaster, it would be better to let MO Ruyue take them all and let them reproduce in her space, leaving at least one root.
MO Ruyue immediately started digging with Gu Ying, carefully and quickly.
The valley of treasures was too big, and the herbs inside were as vast as the sea. Mo Ruyue knew that she didnt have much time now, so she could only try to dig out the most precious and rarest ones and send them into the space.
She missed the ability to control things in her space so much. With just a thought, she could take care of everything without having to do anything.
Fortunately, she had the help of the giant wolves. The wolf king would take her to find the most precious herbs as quickly as possible, while the other giant wolves would loosen the soil around the other herbs, making it easier for MO Ruyue and Gu Ying to dig out the herbs as quickly as possible.
The night passed quietly in the busy digging process.
The two finally stopped fighting when the sun began to rise from the east.
The huge valley of treasures had almost been cleared out. Other than herbs, the rest were wild grass.
Even in a ce full of spirit herbs like this, it was still impossible to eliminate the existence of weeds. It could be said that cockroaches and weeds were the toughest creatures in the world with the strongest survival ability.
Alright, we should leave now. I dont know when well be able toe back next time.
After the disaster, it was hard to say if the valley of treasures would still exist. Otherwise, the person in the mirror valley would not have allowed her to take the wolves and herbs away.
However, the mirror valley existed in an alternate dimension and would not be destroyed by natural disasters in this world.
MO Ruyue believed that she would definitely have the chance toe back and report the situation to that senior. She would say that she and Gu Ying had saved many people and that she had not let him down for entrusting her with the treasure.
The two of them quickly went down the mountain together. But this time, in MO Ruyues interspace, there was a pack of wild wolves that could run freely and even more rare and precious herbs.
Mother, you climbed over the wall again.
MO Ruyue had just jumped onto the wall, but before she could jump down, she saw Da Bao standing in the courtyard, staring at them with a burning gaze. Ah, I didnt want to disturb you all. Besides, I still have to wait.
Although MO Ruyue wasnt afraid that the vigers would see Gu Ying, his appearance was too simr to Qin Mings. It was inevitable that something would happen.
Besides, words could kill, and those gossiping discussions would inevitably affect the babies.
She and Gu Ying were used to being high up in the air, and it was convenient and fast, so when the babies were not following her, she would usually climb over the wall.
Have breakfast. Its cold, so Im heating it for you in the pot.
Da Bao only talked to MO Ruyue the whole time. To Gu Ying, it was like he was talking to air. Even when he nced at Gu Ying, he passed through it.
This child had better not be provoked to the point of directly entering the rebellious stage, right?
MO Ruyue muttered in her heart.
She had expected that Da Bao and Er Bao would have the worst reactions, but it seemed that she had been too lenient.
It wasnt hard to understand why Da Bao would have such resistance. Originally, Qin Ming was the person he admired the most in his heart, and he was also a great hero who had sacrificed his life for the country.
Now that someone who looked almost the same as his father had appeared out of nowhere, and his mother was going to divorce his father and be with that person, it was only natural that Da Bao could not get around this.
Gu Ying, lets go. Lets go down and have a meal. After that, we should pack up and get ready to go.
MO Ruyue reached out and shook Gu Yings hand, returning an apologetic smile.
Other than being bullied when he was very young, ever since hepleted a mission alone at the age of nine, no one dared to look down on him, and no one could live to see the sun the next day after having ideas about him.
But now, because of her, he had to endure the fickleness of a group of children. It was indeed a grievance for him.
Gu Ying held her hand warmly and returned a warm smile.
It was just a trick used by children. If he really minded it, he couldnt afford to lose face.
The family got into the carriage and was about to leave when they suddenly heard someone shout behind them, Qin Ming, didnt you die? How did youe back to life?
Chapter 364 - 364: He Lost His Memory
Chapter 364: He Lost His Memory
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue turned around and saw two vigers standing not far away. They were looking at them in surprise.
Gu Ying sat on the shaft of the carriage, with him as the coachman. However, he did not expect that the carriage would be discovered before it even moved.
It was alreadyte at night when the group returned to the vigest night. The dog was intimidated by MO Ruyues imposing manner and didnt bark.
The wheels of the carriage had also been anti-slip, so it was almost silent when it moved, so it was not noticed by the vigers.
Originally, MO Ruyue had nned to leave without the vigers noticing, but who would have thought that there would still be people who would get up so early in the cold?
Coincidentally or not, after entering the door yesterday, Gu Ying didnt wear a mask anymore. His face was exposed, and from afar, it looked like Qin Ming had revived.
The two vigers were obviously scared out of their wits. Their two bodies were pressed against each other. If not for the fact that they could still rely on each other, they would have copsed to the ground.
This is good
MO Ruyue said gloomily.
She didnt want to scare the babies, so she didnt let GuYing wear a mask. She
didnt expect to cause new trouble.
The two vigers exmations were so loud that they rmed the others. One by one, they came out of their houses with puzzled expressions to check.
I say, arent you two going to chop wood? What are you shouting for? Its broad daylight and you think youre seeing a ghost?
As soon as the vigers voice fell, he saw Gu Ying that looked like Qin Ming. His reaction was not even as good as the other two people. He directly sat down on the ground and pointed at Gu Ying, unable to speak.
Very quickly, the news that Qin Ming was alive spread throughout the entire vige. Almost everyone came out, and of course, Qin Xu i s family was also included.
Now, Qin Shi was still in prison in the county town, but Qin Xu had taken advantage of the new year toe home.
Of course, he had no money and was eyeing the olddys money box. Although he did not have the key, there were many masters who could open the lock. As long as he gave a certain promise, it was not difficult to open the money box.
However, Madam Wang was determined not to say where she had hidden the money box. If Qin Xu wanted to return to his old ways and fight with her, Madam Wang would pick up a vegetable knife and fight him to the death.
This time, the couple was in a deadlock. Qin Xu naturally wouldnt leave if he didnt get the money and stayed at home. However, now that Madam Wang had moved to sleep in the same room as her daughter, she didnt care about Qin Xus food and living at all.
Now that he heard the news that Qin Mlng was actually alive, although he was also bewildered, he still immediately ran out to see what was going on.
Move, move, wheres my big brother?
By the time Qin Xu arrived, the vigers had already surrounded the scene in three circles, but they were standing far away and didnt dare toe forward.
He shouted as he squeezed his way in, only caring about himself, not caring about his wife and children behind him.
When he finally managed to squeeze out, he saw Qin Ming sitting on the shaft of the carriage not far away and was instantly stunned.
Big Brother, is it really you?
Qin Xu asked in a daze, and then the corner of his mouth dropped. He burst into tears and rushed toward Gu Ying.
Im not.
Gu Ying frowned. Just as Qin Xu was about to rush in front of him, he flew up and nimbly jumped onto the roof of the carriage. He was as light and fleeting as a paper man.
Waaaaaah! Hes flying!
The surrounding vigers let out a burst of exmations. They didnt know any light body martial arts and only felt that Qin Ming had floated up.
How could a human float to the roof of the carriage without any wind? he must be a ghost!
Qin Xu was also shocked. He mmed on the brakes and stopped a few steps away. He looked at Qin Ming in shock.
He was very clear that although his big brother also had some martial arts, it was an old path that he had explored on his own. In addition, he had been hunting in the mountains all year round and had practiced it by circling fierce beasts.
No matter how hard he tried, he couldnt fly. Even if he joined the army, he might not be able to practice any high-level martial arts. Was he really a ghost and not a human now?
Qin Xu, he isnt Qin Ming, he is a friend of mine. Dont just randomly call him that.
MO Ruyue said unhappily.
Although she could understand Qin Xu and the vigers current mood, a person who had been dead for many years had suddenly returned. Anyone would want to find out what was going on, but she didnt want to be seen as a monkey show.
These words were meant for Qin Xu and the vigers to hear at the same time. Besides, she was in a hurry to leave and had no mood to stay here and continue talking nonsense with them.
Sister-inw, why dont you admit that big brother has returned? Where are you guys going? Big Brother, do you know that sister-inw sent Mother to jail! Please save your mother!
Qin Xu only hesitated for a moment, but he immediately insisted on his original statement and evenined to Qin Ming.
Qin Xu, Ive already said that hes not your big brother. If you continue to pester me, dont me me for being impolite!
MO Ruyues face turned cold. She realized that Qin Xu wanted to use this opportunity to cling onto them. After all, Qin Ming and Gu Ying looked too simr.
Sister-inw, did you find Big Brother but found out that he lost his memory? Thats exactly what you wanted. This way, he wonte back to the Qin family, and you dont have to be afraid of Big Brother finding out what youve done!
I knew it must be like this! If Big Brother finds out about what you did, hell definitely divorce you. Thats why you didnt tell him the truth and chose to continue lying to him, right?
Qin Xu said excitedly, his face red as he criticized MO Ruyue.
After he finished speaking, he cleverly didnt give MO Ruyue any time to respond. Instead, he turned directly to the vigers who were watching the show from behind and pretended to be pitiful with a sobbing tone.
Fellow vigers, you are the most familiar with us brothers. Look at that face, that figure, and even the voice, its my big brother!
Youre all witnesses to how MO Ruyue treated my Qin family before. Everyone, please be reasonable. Which family wouldnt have a bitter gourd buried in a field of yellow lotuses and suffer even more if they had such a daughter-inw?
If you had such a wife, would you have divorced her long ago? Now that my big brother has finallye back to life, she actually wants to abduct him! i Fellow vigers, please seek justice for my Qin family!
Qin Xus words were equivalent to pulling all the vigers to his side and standing on the opposite side of MO Ruyue.
Some people agreed with him, but some people were still wavering.
MO Ruyue didnt even put the county magistrate in her eyes. Would she really lie to Qin Ming just because she was worried that Qin Ming would divorce her?
This time, MO Ruyue didnt need to say anything. Gu Ying directly floated down from the roof of the carriage andnded lightly in front of Qin Xu, scaring him into retreating.
However, he had only taken a step back when Gu Ying grabbed him by the front of his clothes and lifted him up.
Ive said it before, Im not Qin Ming.
He had already heard MO Ruyue tell him everything that happened after he was reborn, so he naturally knew what kind of person Qin Xu was. So he only despised him and didnt have any good feelings for him..
Chapter 365 - 365: Sinister Intentions
Chapter 365: Sinister Intentions
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Qin Xu looked at Qin Ming at such a close distance and finally realized that he had indeed recognized the wrong person.
Although the man in front of him looked very simr to his brother, his brother had been scratched by a bears w when he went hunting in the mountains, leaving a scratch from his left ear to his lower right abdomen.
If he hadnt dodged quickly enough, the w would have torn him in two.
However, the mans left ear didnt have such a scar, so he couldnt be his brother.
Especially his eyes, they were as dark as the starless night sky, and there was a cold light in the depths of them. Just by meeting his eyes, he felt as if he had been stabbed in the chest by a cold de.
Qin Xu couldnt help but shiver. He felt like he wasnt being stared at by a person, but rather by a beast, or even the King of Hell. I, I You, you are not my my big brother Who are you?
He stammered.
Originally, he had wanted to be stubborn until the end. This way, he could ckmail MO Ruyue and get some benefits from her.
However, being stared at by such a pair of eyes, he felt as if he had fallen into an ice cave Not only did he shiver all over, but even his brain had turned numb. He had no idea what he was saying.
Who I am is none of your business. If you continue to talk nonsense, Ill cripple you.
Of course, Gu Ying leaned closer to Qin Xu and whispered to him, in case the babies heard him.
He could sense a few gazes on him, one of which was extremely sharp and full of hostility. He didnt need to think to know that it must be Da Bao.
The eldest child had been hostile to him since the first time they met, and now that he had shown his skills, the hostility deepened.
S-S-S-sorry!
Qin Xu felt an urge to pee, and he lifted his anus with all his might. The door. He tried to hold in his urge to pee, but he felt that he could not hold on for much longer.
Gu Ying casually threw Qin Xu to the ground. He didnt even have the interest to look at him. He turned around and walked to the side of the carriage, sitting on the shaft.
Now, move aside, I still have things to do.
This time, it was MO Ruyues turn to speak. She raised her head to look at the sky. She didnt know if it was an illusion, but she felt that the sky looked a little red today. It was like a scene where the clouds would be set on fire at night. The entire sky was burning red.
She had a premonition that the meteorite shower was approaching, so she didnt need to waste time with these irrelevant people. Instead, she had to go north as soon as possible and get as far away as possible.
Lady Qin, is this really not Qin Ming? The two of them are too simr.
Someone among the vigers finally couldnt help but speak up. In fact, they had been watching for a long time and could more or less tell that something was wrong.
Just now, the Liu couple had poked their heads out of the carriage. It was obvious that they were going to leave with MO Ruyue and the others, but they did not show any surprise at the man who looked like Qin Ming. It was obvious that they already knew of his existence.
If Qin Ming was really alive, or if his spirit appeared, then why were they so calm?
Also, when that person approached Qin Xu, some sharp-eyed people noticed that there was no scar on his neck. Just based on this point, they could be sure that if he was alive, he was definitely not Qin Ming.
I dont need to give you any exnation. Make way!
MO Ruyue had already lost her patience. She didnt want to believe that the vigers who had lived with Qin Ming for so many years still couldnt recognize that this wasnt the person they were familiar with.
Seeing that MO Ruyue had already started to turn hostile, the vigers who didnt want to offend her immediately shut their mouths.
Since they were only here to watch the show, now that they could confirm that it wasnt Qin Ming resurrected or that there was a ghost in the day, they really shouldnt continue watching.
Mother, is Eldest Uncle really gone? I thought that since Uncle is back, maybe Grandma wille back with him.
A clear childs voice suddenly came from the crowd. The question seemed to be an ordinary question, but it led the topic in another direction.
Yes, Unncle is not here anymore, so Grandma will only be back in a few months.
Madam Wang said to Qin Qingyuan, who was looking at her and asking the question.
Well, then Da Bao and the others must be very disappointed. They havent seen Uncle in a long time and must miss him very much. When they see this uncle, will they be surprised and sad at the same time?
Qin Qingyuan asked again, seemingly casually. I think so. If it were you, what would you do?
Madam Wang asked another question.
Ill be happy at first, then Ill be very sad. And in the future, every time I see that uncle, Ill be even sadder. Doesnt that mean that Father wonte back? Qin Qingyuan replied naively.
This harmony seemed to be a simple conversation between mother and son, but MO Ruyue could tell that there was an unusual sinister intention.
The mother and son were actually trying to provoke the babies emotions, trying to stir up their uneasiness and pain.
Furthermore, Qin Qingyuans words seemed to be telling the babies to follow his lead and to subconsciously resist contact with Gu Ying in the future.
As long as they came into contact with him, they would feel that they had let her biological father down and thus stay further away from Gu Ying.
MO Ruyue was not surprised at all that a boy who was about the same age as Er Bao would think of such a trick.
He had once allowed a venomous snake to bite himself without hesitation, so it was not surprising that he could do such a thing now.
MO Ruyue stared at Qin Qingyuan. It was the first time she had such a murderous intent toward a child.
But soon, perhaps she didnt need to do it herself, the next natural disaster would teach him how to be a human.
She didnt tell any of the vigers about the natural disaster. Perhaps many innocent and kind people would die in this cruel ident, but she could save one but not all.
Moreover, if someone spread the news that she had predicted the appearance of a natural disaster, it would definitely be a huge hidden danger for her.
She wasnt afraid to face those who were more threatening to her, but she didnt want her babies to be like a bird startled by the twang of a bow, living a life of hiding here and there, or only hiding in her space, waiting for her to
solve all the problems.
No one could let her babies experience such a thing, even if it was just a child.
Teacher once told us that there are so many people in this world, it is inevitable that there will be a few who look simr, so it is really not worth it to be surprised.
At this critical moment, Da Bao actually spoke first.
He had easily resolved Qin Qingyuans words and even mocked him for being ignorant.
Thats right. Sir said that the more inexperienced a person is, the more they like to be ignorant. No one liked to be someone elses substitute, and no one would be someone elses substitute. We all remember Teachers words and will not be confused by these.
Er Bao also followed up with a sentence.
Both of them still had memories of Qin Ming, so their attitude was like a p to Qin Qingyuans face.
As for the younger babies, they either had a vague memory or had no memory at all. It was even more impossible for them to be incited by Qin Qingyuan..
Chapter 366 - 366: Running Away
Chapter 366: Running Away
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Brother Da Bao is indeed extraordinary. He was taught by Mr. Du.
For some reason, Qin Qingyuan was so stubborn today. After his first attempt at provocation failed, he actually wanted toe up with a second wave of mockery.
His words implied that Da Bao and the others had followed Du Zhongheng and had not learned much, but they had learned a lot of things about going against the rules.
Little brother Qingyuan is right. Mr. Du is a genius and a schr whose name is known throughout the world. At least weve learned something, unlike some people who have no knowledge and no etiquette.
It was rare for Er Bao to curse, but he could not stand Qin Qingyuans repeated provocations.
Qin Qingyuans face turned red. Ever since his grandmother was imprisoned, his father had taken almost all the money in the family. They could barely feed themselves, let alone pay for his school fees.
On the day he left the private school, in Qingyuan buried himself in his nket and cried. From then on, he could only watch as Da Bao and the others were taught by the number one schr in the world. How could he not be envious and jealous?
Now that his scars had been exposed in public, he was so angry that he trembled and was tongue-tied, not even getting half a bargain back.
Er Bao, who are you calling uneducated and uneducated? That Mr. Du of yours is rejected by all the students in the world because he is a deviant. Only you guys treat him like a treasure, while others treat him like stinky dog shit!
Qin Qingfei said without a care. As soon as she finished speaking, a crisp p was heard. Her face turned to the side, and it was about to swell.
Madam Wang, if you cant discipline your child well, I dont mind helping you.
No matter how much Mr. Du is rejected, he still has a reputation. She cant insult him like this.
Of course, the one who did it was MO Ruyue. She didnt have any rules that prohibited her from hitting children.
Naughty children should be taught a lesson. Even if they were not taught a lesson now, they would be beaten up by society when they grew up.
Youre right, Sister-inw. Although Qingfei didnt do it on purpose, she did do something wrong. She should be taught a lesson.
Qin Xu replied before Madam Wang could, his words carrying a hint of ttery.
He couldnt get the key from Madam Wang, and he didnt have much money on him. It was not enough to support him to continue to enter the city and drink.
There was another way now, which was to get some money from MO Ruyue. Although it was as difficult as ascending to the heavens, how would they know if they didnt try?
Madam Wang red at Qin Xu angrily. At this critical moment, he didnt support his own girl, but instead fawned over that woman who didnt care about the Qin family at all. Was he even considered a father?
Even though she knew that she would definitely offend MO Ruyue if she said what she was about to say, she still said without hesitation, Sister-inw, even if Qingfei was rude, she should be taught a lesson by me as her mother. Why did you scold and hit her? Do you treat her as your child?
Or perhaps its been a long time since youve done anything to them, so you cant help but find a scapegoat to try?
As soon as these words came out, everyone was in an uproar, including Qin Xu, who was dumbfounded. When he came back to his senses, he angrily rebuked, You b*tch, what nonsense are you talking about? Hurry up and apologize to Sister-inw!
Im not apologizing! Im just telling the truth, why should I apologize? Madam Wang was going all out.
Qin Qingfei and Qin Qingyuan were like her most precious treasures. No one was allowed to touch them, not to mention that Qin Qingfei had been pped in public. It was even more unbearable than if she had been pped.
Moreover, MO Ruyue had already expressed her attitude several times. She wanted to draw a clear line with the second branch and didnt care about the second branchs life or death.
Since that was the case, what was the point of lowering her voice and currying favor?
With this thought in mind, Madam Wang finally burst out.
Madam Wang, if you think 1 1 m not disciplining your child well, then you should discipline your son and daughter well. In the past, I didnt pursue the matter with you because of our little friendship, but dont think that I dont know what theyve done.
MO Ruyue also made things clear.
You all know very well how Qin Qingyuan was poisoned by the snake and how the poisonous mushroom incident at the Hanshi Festival came about. Even if you die ten thousand times, you still cant atone for your sins.
For Qin Mings sake, this is myst warning to you. If theres a next time, dont me me for being ruthless!
After she finished speaking, she immediately mounted her horse and said to Gu Ying, Gu Ying, lets go!
Gu Ying was about to whip down when he heard a puzzled voice.
Lady Qin, youre in such a hurry to leave, is something going to happen?
The one who asked was the Qin Viges vige chief. He had already been watching coldly from the side for a long time and noticed that MO Ruyues carriage had a few horses behind it. She even brought along the big young mule.
It definitely didnt look like they were going to enter the city, but rather preparing to go far away. The horses were obviously being used as recements.
What kind of long-distance travel would require the rotation of horses instead of stopping to rest when they were tired? Could it be that something bad was about to happen?
Although the vige chief was only the chief of a small mountain vige, he was also a smart person. He had also wandered outside for a period of time, so his intuition for danger was terrifyingly urate.
Just from the details of the horse, he was able to deduce something that was vaguely close to the truth.
Do I need to tell anyone the reason for my departure?
MO Ruyue raised her eyebrows. She was also surprised by the vige chiefs intuition.
However, such people did exist. It was just that he had never shown it in the past.
No, I didnt mean that.
The vige chief still wanted to exin, but he was interrupted by MO Ruyue.
Since you dont have this intention, then make way. Dont tell me you still want to keep me in this Qin Vige?
In the end, the Qin vigers obediently gave way.
They didnt dare to stop MO Ruyue from leaving. Even if they wanted to stop her, they couldnt!
Vige chief, what should we do?
Seeing the carriage gradually move away, a viger came to the vige chiefs side and said with some worry.
If it wasnt for the fact that something big was about to happen, the vige chief wouldnt have be so anxious. In the past, every time he had such an expression, it meant that a lot of bad things had happened.
Some of the vigers had followed the vige chief for many years, so they were familiar with his various reactions.
Although I dont know whats going to happen, Im sure it wont be anything good.
The vige chiefs face was gloomy. Lady Qin has real ability and can make friends with some high-ranking officials and dignitaries. Maybe she received some news this time, so she came back to pack her things and prepare to escape.
Just in case, those in the vige who have the means should leave if they can.
Those who really cant, stay and leave it to fate.
After he finished speaking, he immediately turned around and left.
Seeing that MO Ruyue had left in such a hurry, he thought that there was not much time left. He was still in a hurry to go home and pack his things. He also left with his family. He did not have time to apany these people and wait for the disaster toe.
Vige Chief, Vige Chief, where are you going? Dont leave us behind! When the vigers heard this, they immediately exploded.
No one knew what had happened, and now that even the vige chief was so flustered, they were even more like headless flies, not knowing what to do.
Im only going to seek shelter with a rtive. I cant bring all of you along. If you have any connections, quickly think about it.
The vige chief said one more sentence and left without looking back, ignoring everyones calls.
To think that he was still the patriarch of the Qin Vige. Now, when faced with the arrival of a great disaster, he only cared about himself and left his vigers behind..
Chapter 367 - 367: Celebrating A Festival On The Road?
Chapter 367: Celebrating A Festival On The Road?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When Qin Xu heard the news, he was scared out of his wits. He immediately ran to Madam Wangs side and said anxiously, You also heard it, a big disaster ising, hurry up and find Mothers money box! Without gold and silver, how can we escape?
However, Madam Wang seemed to have heard nothing. She looked at Qin Xu in disdain and then spat fiercely.
Bah! Even if I take out the money box, there wont be a share for us mother and children. Youll still run away with the money!
Since a great disaster ising, then lets all die together!
She was certain that Qin Xu wouldnt just sit around and wait for death, so she deliberately said this.
After Qin Xu left, she would take the money box out and run for her life with Qin Qingyuan and his sister!
Qin Xu stared at Madam Wang, the veins on his forehead bulging. He wanted to crush her bones and scatter her ashes.
In the past, this woman was submissive. She didnt even dare to take a breath when he red at her. Now, not only did she dare to use a knife on him, but she even threatened to die with him!
She had lived long enough, but he hadnt!
Good. Good, Madam Wang. From today onwards, youll get the hell back to your mothers house. M/hen this matter is over, Ill definitely divorce you with a divorce letter. Just you wait!
After Qin Xu finished shouting fiercely, he turned around and ran away. He didnt even look at his son and daughter.
Although he didnt have much money on hand, he could still sell some old goods for a few copper coins after tidying up his clothes and decorations. It would be better tost a day than to leave it to this woman!
Madam Wang watched Qin Xu Run away, but her heart didnt waver at all.
She had long been disheartened by him and had no more thoughts about him, so how could there be any hope or disappointment?
Qingyuan, Qingfei, lets go home. Pack some clothes and go to Grandma with Mother.
Madam Wangs house was also a few dozen miles away from here. If they quickly set off now, they might be able to arrive before night fell.
It was not a wise choice to spend the night in the wilderness during winter. If they were to dy any longer, they would have to wait until the next morning before they could set off.
Qin Qingfei was about toin, but she swallowed her words when Qin Qingyuan red at her coldly.
The two of them followed Madam Wang in silence. When they returned home and saw that the courtyard seemed to have been ransacked, they did not look surprised at all.
Other than the three of them, there was no other living thing in the yard. Thest few chickens, ducks, pigs, andmbs were all stuffed into a sack by Qin Xu and were exchanged for money.
They returned to their rooms and were not surprised to see that their rooms had also been ransacked. Even the good clothes that the siblings had hidden had disappeared.
Qin Xu had thoroughly ransacked the ce. As long as it was something that could be sold for a few dors, he had taken it all away.
Madam Wang actuallyughed out loud when she saw this scene.
As expected of what Qin Xu did. Every time he did something, it would refresh her knowledge.
She waited quietly for a while before asking Qin Qingyuan to prepare three bamboo baskets. She packed the remaining clothes and put them into the bamboo baskets.
At the top of the basket were a few bags of dried wild vegetables and some dried medicinal herbs, but there was no dry food.
Ever since Qin Xu came back, all the food she had shamelessly gotten from the vigers houses had basically gone into his mouth. Now, the rice bucket in the kitchen was cleaner than her face, so there was no extra food to make dry food.
Even the sorghum and millet, which were the most difficult to swallow, were gone. Qin Xu waspletely ruthless. Even if he was heartless to her, his disobedient wife, he wouldnt be like this to his children.
Even a vicious tiger would not eat its cubs.
Qin Xus behavior was worse than an animals.
Madam Wang calmly packed up the things she was going to take with her and left the Qin familys house with Qin Qingyuan and Qin Qingfei.
This time, she didnt even lock the door.
The house had been ransacked. Unless the doors, windows, tables, and chairs were all torn down, there was nothing of value left.
Besides, she had already made up her mind to never return to the Qin family. The most valuable thing of the Qin family was in her hands, and there was nothing here that was worth her nostalgia.
After Madam Wang left, someone soon found that the courtyard door of the
Qin familys house was open. The courtyard was empty and there was nothing
Some people went in curiously and found that almost everything had been taken away except for some heavy personal belongings.
Only then did they realize that Qin Xu family had run away with the money. Some people didnt want to give up and wanted to find more things in the house. However, no matter how they searched, they found nothing.
The Qin family didnt even have many worthless things left, let alone valuable things.
Everyone finally gave up and hurried home to pack their things and prepare to escape.
As the carriage drove out of the Qin Vige, Tang Tang couldnt help but stick her head out of the window. She looked at the Qin Vige that was gradually disappearing into the distance, and then turned back to look at MO Ruyue.
Mother, will we evere back here?
Mo Ruyue only told the babies that they were going on a long trip, but she didnt say where they were going or what they were going to do.
However, Tang Tang had noticed something from MO Ruyues movements, so MO Ruyue was very surprised when she asked this question.
Tang Tang, we will have to leave the Qin Vige sooner orter, so Im letting you guys get used to it first.
She couldnt exin the prophecy that a catastrophe was about toe, so she could only take a step back and find another excuse.
Just like when we went to Grandpa Bai l s house, was it also to slowly adapt to life after leaving the Qin Vige?
Tang Tang asked again.
MO Ruyue wouldnt tell her babies that she was being watched. Perhaps it wouldnt be toote to tell them when they were a little older and at least had a certain ability to protect themselves.
Although the blood tower would soon cease to exist, with MO Ruyues current ability and sharpness, it was hard to guarantee that she would not be targeted again.
Yes, and Master Bai l s family has a good rtionship with Mother, and they have also kindly invited her, so its not a bad idea for Mother to use this as a transition.
MO Ruyues exnation received Tang Tangs approval. She nodded seriously and said, I know, Mother.
Ruyue, if not to the Bai Residence, where are we going? Its almost the
Lantern Festival, are we going to spend the festival on the road?
Aunt Liu also asked.
She kept feeling that MO Ruyue was hiding something, and the vige chiefs words had also made her a little worried.
Well, this kind of festival should be a very new experience for the babies. In any case, well only consider next semester after the beginning of spring, so theres no hurry.
The answers that MO Ruyue gave were very reasonable, so Mrs. Liu couldnt find any fault with them. She could only nod and say, Youre right. Its better to let the children walk around than to be trapped in the mountain vige forever.
After they left the mountain, the carriage obviously began to speed up.
The two ck horses were worthy of being called top quality precious horses. Even at this speed, the carriage was still very stable.
Gu Yings horse-controlling skills were also top-notch. He could even hold the reins with ease, as long as he gave the two horses an order asionally.
When he heard the voiceing from the carriage, his lips curled up slightly.
Bing Ers ability to lie was getting better and better, but she didnt want to use it on him..
Chapter 368 - 368: Doomsday Scene
Chapter 368: Doomsday Scene
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
On the way, Er Bao also nced out of the window and immediately called out,
Mother, where are we now? Why arent there any more mountains?
When he called out, the other babies also moved to the window to look. As expected, there were no more mountains on either side of the road. When they looked behind the carriage, they could see that the edge of the mountain range had been left behind.
Were heading north, so we naturally have to leave that mountain range. Itll be different if we go to the county.
MO Ruyue pointed them in the right direction and also took the opportunity to teach them a few skills to distinguish directions in the wild.
Mother, I heard from Master that the scenery and amorous feelings of the northernnds are very different from ours. The people there are more boorish and bold, and they dont pay much attention to etiquette and the like, right?
Er Bao was determined to be the number one businessman in the future, so it was inevitable that he would have to deal with all kinds of people. However, the furthest he had been to was the county, and the people he hade into contact with were limited. Now that he had the opportunity to travel far, he was the most excited among the babies.
Well, the people from the north are indeed very forthright and enthusiastic. They also pay a lot of attention to etiquette, but they may not pay as much attention to some small details as we do.
MO Ruyue exined seriously.
As she continued to teach the babies new knowledge, the carriage had been traveling for the entire morning.
Gu Ying stopped the carriage outside a small town and did not choose to enter the city.
There was food and water prepared in the car, so there was no need to go into the city to replenish. The car stopped because it considered the health of the babies.
However, in order to go as far north as possible before the natural disaster, even if they stopped to rest now, they only stopped for half an incenses time.
Although the babies and the Liu couple felt that it was a little strange, they did not think too much about it. However, at night, they did not go into the city to stay at an inn. Instead, they only slowed down a little and let them sleep in the galloping carriage. At that time, they finally felt that something was wrong.
But this time, the babies didnt ask much, because their mother must have a reason to hide it. She would tell them when she wanted to.
MO Ruyue had already thought of a reason to exin, but before she could use it, she went with the flow and fell silent.
After running non-stop for three whole days, the babies were already exhausted. They only managed to persist thanks to the spring water from the space provided by MO Ruyue.
Although MO Ruyues heart ached for her babies, she didnt know if such a long distance was enough, so she could only grit her teeth and persist.
Although the spirit spring water was an excellent energy recovery agent, MO Ruyue didnt want them to rely too much on the effects of the spirit spring water, so they had been strictly controlling their intake.
At this time, the babies also realized that something big was about to happen. They were also struggling and did notin, for fear that they would cause trouble for their mother and mess up her original n.
The physical fitness of the Liu couple was not the same as before. MO Ruyue had long used the spirit spring water to clean the impurities in their bodies. Even so, after running around these few days, they were exhausted.
However, since the babies could grit their teeth and persevere, they had no reason toin. Instead, they helped MO Ruyue take care of the babies and did a lot of work.
On the other hand, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were still the same as before they set off. They werepletely unaffected.
Bing Er, we cant go on like this. The children are still young. They will be crippled if we run for another two days.
Gu Ying couldnt help but whisper to MO Ruyue.
I know, but you didnt see what I saw. If we take the risk now, we can still recover our vitality in the future. But if were still within the range of the natural disaster, Im afraid
MO Ruyue couldnt continue. It was the first time she had such fear.
After she made an exception and allowed a group of little turnips to follow her, she had tried too many impossible things. So after experiencing fear once, she had even begun to get used to this feeling.
Ill increase the speed. Were taking the official road now, and there are few pedestrians in the winter. We should be able to go further.
Gu Ying could only sigh.
He had never experienced what fear was, so he couldnt empathize with MO Ruyues feelings.
This was the first time the two of them did not have the same thoughts.
At noon on the fourth day, a strange phenomenon urred.
The natural disaster was here!
The red clouds in the southern sky rolled, and bursts of fire peeked through the clouds, burning half of the sky red.
The thick clouds rolled over as if the sky was about to copse.
A gust of wind rose up from the t ground, whistling and blowing. Even though the ground was still frozen hard, countless grains of sand and withered grass were swept up and swept over.
Although the big ck horse was a top-ss horse, it was still panicking in the face of such a terrible natural disaster. It neighed and raised its front hooves to stand up.
If it wasnt for Gu Yings excellent horse-controlling skills, the carriage would definitely flip over if it suddenly stopped at such a high speed.
Even so, the huge forward momentum of the carriage still caused the people inside to rush forward. If MO Ruyue had not been prepared and installed armrests and seat belts in the carriage, she would not have been able to stop so many people by herself.
Ying, whats going on?
The big ck horse was still restless, and the carriage kept turning and retreating. For the safety of the others, MO Ruyue did not open the carriage door, but asked through the door.
Even though Gu Ying didnt reply, she could already see the bright light outside through the window.
The natural disaster is here.
Gu Ying replied briefly, still trying hard to control the horse.
MO Ruyue angrily opened the door and rushed out, then casually closed the door and took the reins from Gu Yings hands.
The two of them worked together to calm the big ck horse down. Although it was still snorting and scratching its hooves, at least it was not running away in fright.
The two controlled the carriage and turned to the south. They did not continue to run north, because no matter how fast the big ck horse was, it could not outrun the meteorite rain.
The sky in the south had already turned red and ck. Countless bolts of lightning were dancing like snakes, continuously drilling out of the clouds, ruthlessly tearing the clouds apart and striking down.
The rolling clouds were torn apart and gathered again until a fireball came out from behind the clouds.
They had already run so far away, but they could still clearly see the huge fireball flying out and smashing fiercely into the ground.
The fireball was followed by thick smoke, like the tail of aet, sweeping across the sky.
This was exactly the doomsday scene that MO Ruyue had seen in her illusion. She had always been someone who would remain calm even if Mount Tai copsed in front of her, but in front of such a natural disaster, her heart still trembled.
Gu Ying, this is the doomsday I saw.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but mutter.
If it wasnt for that mysterious persons reminder that made her see an illusion, she would still be in the center of the disaster.
They had been running for three days and nights, but they were still frightened by such a scene. How desperate would those who were still left behind be?
MO Ruyue had always been afraid of trouble. If it wasnt necessary, she wouldnt even do something like hanging a pot to help the world.
She was indeed once a cold-blooded killer, but now that her babies had melted the ice in her heart, and she was lucky enough to meet Gu Ying again, her heart was gradually warming up.. How could she turn a blind eye to such a tragic situation?
Chapter 369 - 369: Exposed
Chapter 369: Exposed
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gu Ying did not say anything.
He only quietly held MO Ruyues hand tightly. He was extremely d that they had found each other again before such a disaster happened.
If MO Ruyue had note to find him, he should still be exterminating the remnants of the blood tower. At the very least, he would not havee to the great north, which was nearly a thousand miles away.
Mother, whats going on outside?
San Baos voice came from the carriage.
Before MO Ruyue left the carriage, she had told them not to leave the carriage and not to look outside.
The babies trusted MO Ruyue unconditionally, so even at such an urgent time, they still stayed in the carriage and only Da Bao came forward to ask. Something happened outside, but it hasnt affected us for the time being. When everything is fine, Mother will personally exin it to you, so for now, you should obediently stay in the carriage.
She needed to pay close attention to the changes in the situation outside. Now was not the time to be distracted by her babies.
Okay, Ill help Grandpa Liu and Grandma Liu take care of my younger siblings. Da Bao said in a serious tone.
The rest of the babies were practically hugging into a ball, tightly protected in the arms of the Liu couple.
Si Bao and Tang Tang could not help but shiver. However, they bit their lips tightly for fear that their words would distract their mother.
They only knew now why their mother had brought them out. It seemed like they hade to avoid the disaster outside. However, they didnt know if they had managed to avoid it or what would happen next.
As the first fireball emerged from the clouds, it was followed by a second one, a third one
More and more fireballs fell from the sky, burning the thick clouds that were pressing down to pieces.
At this time, MO Ruyues carriage was parked on the official road, only ten miles away from the nearest town. She had dyed for a while, but there were already faint cries and shoutsing from the distance.
Looking in the direction of the town, there was a cloud of dust. It seemed that other carriages and horses were rushing over.
Ying, drive the car up the mountain. MO Ruyue said decisively.
Gu Ying also pulled the reins and led the carriage away from the mountain road, directly turning into a small path up the mountain.
It was the middle of winter, and the trees in the north had be extremely dry and dehydrated. Once a mountain fire broke out, it would definitely be a dead end.
Logically speaking, MO Ruyue had already chosen to walk on the main road, far away from the forest. Going up the mountain like this was no different from seeking death.
However, MO Ruyue still had her final trump card, which was her space.
If there was really an emergency, she could just enter the space. She was notpletely ignorant of the outside world after entering the space. Even if there was a mountain fire, there was food and water in the space. There was enough supplies, and it would not be a problem for everyone to live in there for a lifetime.
Now, the people in the city were fleeing. If she disappeared on the official road, it was hard to guarantee that it would not cause a new round of panic.
Even at this time, MO Ruyue still had a strong sense of self-protection. She didnt want to reveal his final secret to others.
Other than knowing that MO Ruyue had a backup n, Gu Ying would also obey her unconditionally. Even if it was a raging mountain fire now, he would not hesitate to drive the car in.
The babies in the carriage could clearly feel their bodies leaning back. The carriage was not moving very fast, and they could feel that the carriage was going uphill.
Big Brother, are we going up the mountain? San Bao asked in a low voice.
None of them went to open the car doors or windows. Although they had all kinds of doubts in their hearts, they still unconditionally believed in MO Ruyue.
Yes, Mother must have her own intentions. Lets not talk too much and not distract Mother.
Da Baoforted them in a low voice, but he didnt know that MO Ruyue and Gu Ying had heard everything they said.
Gu Ying tilted his head and nced at MO Ruyue. Her expression was originally extremely serious, but now, she couldnt help but tear up. She looked proud and gratified.
Youve taught them well. Gu Ying mouthed to MO Ruyue.
No, theyve always been very sensible and kind children. I should say that Ive been redeemed by them.
MO Ruyue shook her head and also mouthed a reply.
Or rather, it could be said that they had achieved sess with each other.
Gu Ying didnt continue speaking. He turned his head and continued to look at the road ahead, driving the carriage up the mountain at a fast speed.
Of course, he didnt just head straight for the top of the mountain. Instead, he quickly identified the terrain. As he continued to head up, he also continued to head north. He even deliberately walked into the naturally formed fire shelters.
The mountain range here was much smaller than the one in the south. It was easy to cross one mountain and enter another after walking a distance.
At this moment, the ground suddenly began to shake. A rumbling sound chased from behind, which also made MO Ruyues expression change. She suddenly stood up, the tip of her foot touching the shaft of the carriage, and with a flip, she directly climbed up to the roof of the carriage.
She looked back, and her face instantly turned pale.
A huge fireball with thick smoke came crashing toward them. Perhaps the real meteorite inside was not that big, but the mes produced by the friction of the atmosphere made it look ferocious and terrifying.
No, it seemed like he had to use hisst move!
MO Ruyue didnt want to expose herself so early, but now that things hade to this, she couldnt take the risk to keep the secret. After all, everyone in the car was her family, and there was no one else.
With a single thought, the carriage disappeared from its original spot.
The fireball in the sly also fell directly not long after, smashing three kilometers away from MO Ruyue.
The scorching air wave pushed outward, knocking down all the trees and houses within a five-kilometer radius. Those who failed to escape in time were vaporized before they could even scream in pain.
It was just that the babies and the Liu couple could not see such a tragic scene. Even MO Ruyue and Gu Ying only had time to see the fireball fly over their heads and smash in the direction they had to pass through.
The surroundings turned dark, but light quickly returned. The babies didnt know what had happened, but they subconsciously snuggled deeper into the Liu couples arms.
Although the Liu couple was also very nervous, they protected the babies tightly with both hands. They had a thought in their hearts. If a disaster really happened, they would risk their old bones to protect their babies safety.
After the initial tension, they realized that the carriage had stopped.
Mo Ruyue and GuYing didnt say anything. It was quiet outside. Without her call, the people in the carriage didnt dare to go out to see what was happening.
My babies, dont be in a hurry. Ill let you outter.
MO Ruyues voice came from outside. Her tone seemed to have returned to her usual calmness. What was incredible was that upon hearing her voice, the babies and the Liu couple also inexplicably calmed down.
Even though they couldnt see what was happening outside, as long as MO Ruyue said that it was fine, it would really be fine.
Bing Er, are you going to show your cards to the babies? Gu Ying asked again.
He wasnt worried that someone would betray MO Ruyue, but he was worried that they would think that she was a monster and start to distance themselves from her. She would definitely suffer a huge blow.
Ill have to say it sooner orter. Although Im nning to wait for them to grow up and mature, the situation is forcing me to do so.
MO Ruyue was not willing to take such a risk, but the situation was not in her control, so she could only let nature take its course..
Chapter 370 - 370: Another Room
Chapter 370: Another Room
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Although she said it in a rxed manner, Gu Ying could tell that the nervousness in her eyes could not be hidden. It was obvious that the babies were now extremely important to her, and it was not an exaggeration to say that they were her weakness.
MO Ruyue, who was not afraid of anything, finally had something that she was afraid of. This was something that she would never have imagined in her previous life.
He silently walked forward and pulled MO Ruyue into his arms, using his actions to express his silentfort.
MO Ruyue also hugged his waist back. Even though the two of them didnt say a word, they both used their actions to show their dependence and support for each other.
Alright, Im fine. The babies have been waiting for such a long time. Even if theyre quiet now, they must be waiting for my answer.
After a short embrace, MO Ruyue withdrew from Gu Yings arms. She was afraid that she would lose the courage to speak if she stayed any longer.
It was not that she had never thought about it before. After all, the babies would not open the doors and windows of the carriage to look outside without her permission. It would not be a problem even if they had to wait a long time.
However, things were not that simple.
The meteorite had already descended very low, so there was a high chance that there was a sea of fire outside.
They were already in the forest, and a little spark could form a prairie fire. Not to mention that there was a whistling wind outside, which would help the fire and the fire would borrow the wind. No one knew how long the fire wouldst.
Of course, Gu Ying still had a bead that could avoid fire and smoke, as well as another bead with unknown uses. It could open up a safe zone in the sea of fire, but it was no different from her space.
It would still shock the babies.
So, after careful consideration, she finally made a decision, which was to let her babies experience two incredible things at once.
MO Ruyue had already thought of an excuse to exin, but she didnt know if the babies would really believe her.
My babies, you cane out now.
MO Ruyue took a deep breath and called out to the carriage.
Mother, can we reallye out?
The first to respond was Tang Tang.
Initially, MO Ruyue thought that once she called out, the babies who had been waiting for a long time would immediatelye out of the carriage. But what she didnt expect was that when it really came to this time, the babies actually started to hesitate. Yes, its safe outside. You cane out now.
MO Ruyue added,
She could hear that the babies breathing had almost sped up, and even their heartbeats had sped up.
They seemed to be even more nervous than her.
Mother, if you feel that now is not the right time, we can continue to wait in the carriage.
This time, Da Bao replied.
He seemed to have seen through MO Ruyues thoughts and knew that she was hesitating about whether to let them out and whether to let them know something.
So, a childs intuition is as scary as a womans sixth sense?
Its alright. Come out. Its already very safe.
MO Ruyue finally settled down and decided to tell the secret to her babies honestly.
Although they were very young, their maturity was far beyond her imagination.
It was her who was too fixated on their age and thought of them as too fragile. Their different growth experiences had destined them to be very different from other children of the same age.
The car door opened, and the babies came out one by one. They were all stunned when they saw the environment outside.
Even though they had been in the carriage all this time and didnt know what was going on outside, they knew that the situation outside was abnormal.
Even in the Qjn Vige, one could still see some green in the deep mountains, but it was definitely not this verdant and glistening appearance, not to mention the herb field not far away.
The most eye-catching thing was a building dozens of meters away.
The building looked like arge silver-white mushroom, as tall as a four-story building.
Furthermore, it was not a wooden structure, but a material that they had never seen before. It was as if it was made of carefully forged steel, with a cold luster.
Mother, where are we?
San Bao was fascinated and didnt forget to ask MO Ruyue.
Mother, you didnt let us out before because you didnt want us to see this ce and this building?
Er Bao also followed up with a question,
The other three babies also looked at MO Ruyue in confusion. Only Da Bao was staring at the building in the distance, not knowing what he was thinking.
I didnt let you leave the carriage before because the situation outside was very dangerous. The carriage was also running at high speed. If you were not careful, you would be thrown off the carriage.
As for this ce, Mother did want to tell you about it after you grew up.
However, the n didnt change as quickly as it did. I didnt expect a natural disaster to suddenly descend, and this matter was brought forward to now. MO Ruyue exined seriously, not wanting the babies to misunderstand
This ce What is this ce?
Da Bao asked the most crucial question.
This ce You can just treat it as another room.
MO Ruyue thought about how to exin the problem of the other space and finally chose the most suitable metaphor.
Another room? Mother, youre saying that we were in the same room before, but now were no longer in that room, and have entered another room?
Er Baos reaction was the fastest. He understood MO Ruyues meaning almost instantly.
Yes, thats it!
MO Ruyue was shocked by this answer. She didnt expect Er Baosprehension ability to be so strong that she didnt even need to exin anything further.
Then how did we get in? It was red outside just now, but it suddenly turned dark. Is this the room we entered?
Er Bao immediately asked.
When were about to leave this room, well also see darkness in front of us, as if were going in or out.
When MO Ruyue exined to Er Bao, she was also exining to the other babies. Seeing them gradually reveal expressions of understanding, her heart became more and more rxed.
Up until now, the babies had not looked at her with fear in their eyes, which made her heart slowly rx.
Mother, why do you have such a room and we dont? It looks exactly the same as our original room!
Also, is that a mushroom over there?
Si Baos gaze had already shifted to the building not far away. Although he could tell that the building was made of an unknown metal, the shape of the mushroom was so lifelike that he suddenly had the urge to cook it.
Why does Mother have this room? Even Mother herself doesnt know. It just suddenly appeared and scared Mother. But Mother saw that you were very calm, much better than Mother.
When MO Ruyue was exining, she also took the opportunity to praise the babies.
Of course, she wouldnt say that she had already experienced rebirth, and the addition of a space couldnt surprise her more.
Mother was also afraid at that time? I dont believe that Mother has ever been afraid of anything! San Bao immediately retorted.
He was MO Ruyues most loyal little fan of her martial arts. He would never believe that such a powerful mother could be afraid
Its true. Mother isnt lying to you.
MO Ruyue was deliberately joking with him, trying to ease the atmosphere..
Chapter 371 - 371: Those Wolves Are My Friends
Chapter 371: Those Wolves Are My Friends
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Whats happening outside? Mother, you just said that a natural disaster wasing. Is this the real reason you took us out of the Qin Vige?
What I want to know is, Mother, how did you know that the natural disaster wasing?
Da Bao raised another question at the crucial moment, and it was an extremely sharp question.
He was older, so he thought more. It seemed that he had already thought of many problems when he looked into the distance just now.
Would you believe me if I told you I dreamed about it? MO Ruyue said with a bitter smile.
She really couldnt exin this. Also, she was going to go out with Gu Ying to save people, so she would leave the babies in the space. Otherwise, they wouldnt be able to exin how they got the treasures.
Yes, Ill believe you if you tell me.
Da Bao nodded his head without any further ado. From his eyes, it was clear that he wasnt being perfunctory, but rather, he truly believed in her.
MO Ruyue didnt know why she was a little speechless. She was so touched that she was speechless.
So now, the babies trusted her unconditionally. Even if they knew that something ridiculous was going to happen, they would still choose to trust her?
Even so, she still kept onest secret, which was that she had reincarnated and possessed the original owner.
No matter how much the babies trusted her, she would not choose to tell them this secret. She would just let them think that her bad mother had changed for the better.
Mother, can we go to that big mushroom to take a look? I see a chance!
Si Bao carefully asked for MO Ruyues opinion. He really wanted to know what was inside and why it was in the shape of a mushroom.
Perhaps there were a lot of fresh ingredients piled up there. In that case, would they taste the same as the ingredients produced in the room outside?
Not now.
This time, MO Ruyue, who had always granted all his requests, directly rejected his request.
There are some things in there that Mother hasnt studied and understood. Im also afraid that youll encounter some danger if you go in without permission, so its better to wait a little longer. There will always be an opportunity in the future.
MO Ruyue wasnt afraid at all that the babies would sneak into the mushroom house when she left them alone. The lock on the other side was a biological gene lock, and no one could open it except for her and Gu Ying.
Although he was rejected by MO Ruyue, Si Bao didnt look very disappointed
Since his mother had said that there might be danger, then there was really danger. Therefore, he would not be bothered by this problem at all. After all, his mother had said that there would always be opportunities in the future. It was just a matter of time.
Mother, are we going to stay here forever?
Tang Tang finally found a chance to ask a question. This was also the question that the other babies wanted to know. They immediately stared at MO Ruyue in unison.
There are still natural disasters outside, so well be staying here for the time being. But after we pass, well still have to return to our original rooms. Thats where you should live.
As for this ce, I can bring you guys in to y from time to time.
MO Ruyue pointed to the back of the mushroom house. There was an extremely familiar courtyard there.
Isnt that our home in Qin Vige?
San Bao shouted, pointing excitedly at the courtyard. He had felt that it looked familiar just now, but he had not dared to confirm it.
It really is!
Er Bao also said in surprise. He hadnt noticed it. From his point of view, the courtyard just happened to be covered by the mushroom house, and now he could see it in the direction San Bao was pointing.
Yes, I built it after our house outside. You can live in your own rooms. Theres enough food and water here, so you can live here for a while.
MO Ruyue wasnt sure when they would be able to go out. The only thing she was sure of was that the rescue after the natural disaster would definitely be a purgatory-like experience. The impact on the babies was too great, and it wasnt something they could bear right now.
So when she and Gu Ying went out, she left the babies here and asked the Liu couple to take care of them.
Ah! Thats right, theres still the Liu couple!
It was only then that she remembered that there were still two people. Before sheid her cards on the table with the babies, she was really a little nervous, but after that, she was too rxed and actually forgot that there were still two people waiting for her to clear her doubts.
Uncle Liu, Aunt Liu, do you have anything to ask me?
MO Ruyue turned to look at the couple. If they really couldnt ept it, it would mean that their fate hade to an end.
She believed that no matter how scared the two of them were, they would never reveal her secret. She had the confidence to read people.
Ruyue, youve already made it clear that we dont have anything else to ask. Aunt Liu shook her head. Although there was still some confusion in her eyes, there was also no fear on her face.
If the babies were able to ept this situation so quickly because they were still young, full of curiosity about everything, and had great trust in her, then it was somewhat incredible that the Liu couple could ept it so quickly.
MO Ruyue carefully confirmed once again. The couples eyes were very firm and not fleeting. It was clear that they had truly epted this matter from the depths of their hearts.
Hut
MO Ruyue couldnt help but heave a sigh of relief. At this time, she finally had a feeling that the dust had settled.
Finally, she didnt have to lose anyone. This feeling was really good.
Aunt Liu, Ying and I will go out to take a lookter. You and the babies can stay here and go to the yard to take a look.
We still have things to do outside and may not be able to take care of this ce for a while. Ill leave the babies in your care.
MO Ruyue solemnly pleaded with Aunt Liu.
Even without the Liu couple, the babies current ability to take care of themselves was enough to make her feel at ease. But now the Liu couple was also like family. MO Ruyue didnt want the two to lose a sense of belonging, so she asked them for help.
Dont worry, your uncle Liu and I are already used to the days with the babies by our side. Even if you want to chase us away, its toote!
Aunt Liu made a joke, and Uncle Liu actually revealed a rare smile. The atmosphere suddenly became rxed and harmonious.
Lets go. Ill show you the courtyard over there and take a look around this ce.
MO Ruyue was about to lead them to the courtyard when suddenly, a series of wolf howls came from the distance.
There are wolves!
The Liu couples faces suddenly changed, and they subconsciously stood in front of the babies.
This action won MO Ruyue a very good impression, and at the same time, she realized that she had missed something.
Dont be nervous, those wolves are my friends. MO Ruyue said in a shocking manner.
Mother, what did you say? The wolves over there are your friend?
San Bao picked at his ear with his pinky, as if he wanted to hear what he had just heard again.
Yes, you havent heard. Those are the friends of your uncle Gu Ying and I.
As MO Ruyue spoke, she took out a bone whistle from her arms and blew it lightly.
There was no sound, but the howls of the wolves in the distance were getting closer and closer.
Dont be afraid. They saved Mother before, and Mother saved them too. So, they wont hurt you. Sheforted him again..
Chapter 372 - 372: Hit A Soft Nail
Chapter 372: Hit A Soft Nail
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
A cloud of dust flew in the distance, and the wolves that gradually appeared were getting closer and closer, allowing the babies and the Liu couple to see their appearance clearly.
Such a huge figure, from a distance, it was bigger than an ordinary wolf. When it got close, the oppressive fear made everyones breathing quicken and their pupils dte.
The ck wolf in the lead was particrly handsome. It stopped about ten meters away from the babies, and the other giant wolves also stopped behind it.
Wuwu
The ck wolf king shook its head and whimpered happily, as if it was greeting MO Ruyue.
These are my babies. Dont scare them!
MO Ruyue pointed at the babies and said to the ck wolf king. Thetter nodded under the babies surprised gazes.
M-mother, it can understand your words?
San Baos breathing became more rapid, and he even felt like he was about to faint.
This was a group of huge wolves!
Not only were they Mothers friends, but they could even understand her?
It was simply too magical!
These wolves are not what you think. They are all human and can understand what you are saying. So, dont offend my friends.
MO Ruyue also said to her babies.
The two of them needed a process to get to know each other. In the following days, they would live together in this space for a while.
Yes, yes. Mother, can I touch them?
San Baos fingers had been itching for a long time. If it was his own dog, he would have already yed with it, but these were real wolves in front of him!
What did it feel like to be a wolf?
He really wanted to know!
Then you have to ask them for their opinion. After all, they are not our own
MO Ruyue was very clear about the difference between a beast and a pet. Moreover, those wolves were also her friends andpanions now, so it was even more impossible for her to only treat them as beasts.
Ask the wolf?
San Bao was very tempted.
Seeing San Baos eagerness to try, Mo Ruyue also held a supportive attitude and encouraged, San Bao, go and try.
Alright!
San Bao had been waiting for these words.
He carefully walked forward and stretched out his hand. His eyes were fixed on the ck wolf king, and he made a tsk tsk sound.
He had only taken two steps when he stopped and turned to look at MO Ruyue. He said aggrievedly, Mother, is it looking down on me?
MO Ruyue also saw the disdain in the ck wolf kings eyes and instantlyughed.
If San Bao had changed his identity, the ck wolf king would have bitten off his neck long ago.
Contempt? Those were all light!
Mother just told you that these are Mothers friends, not ordinary wolves, but you called them like dogs and didnt give you a bite. Thats because your mother is respected.
She immediately pointed out the problem with San Bao.
Oh, oh, right, its my fault!
San Baos apologetic attitude was extremely good, and he immediately turned to the ck wolf king and cupped his hands.
Im sorry, Uncle ck Wolf. Ive offended you earlier. Can Ie to your side and touch you?
Pfft. Hahaha!
MO Ruyue finally couldnt help butugh. Even the few babies behind her rxed a lot andughed along.
This time, the ck wolfs eyes shed with helplessness. But after a short hesitation, it slowly took a step forward and sniffed as it walked to San Bao.
An arms length away, the ck wolf king stopped and tilted its head to look at San Bao.
Mother
San Bao wanted to turn back again, but he was interrupted by MO Ruyue.
Think about what you should do. Dont ask me everything.
Although she took care of the babies in every possible way, she would not teach them everything step by step.
Although San Bao had been rebuffed, he didnt mind. He also tilted his head and looked at the ck wolf king. After a while, he slowly squatted down so that his line of sight was lower than the ck wolf kings.
He remembered reading in an ancient book that no matter what animal it was, it would instinctively be wary of its own tall living creature.
If one could lower ones line of sight to its own, it would give it a sense of security and allow it to rx.
The ck wolf king was his mothers friend and had no enmity towards him, so he had to show his sincerity and respect.
Sure enough, the ck wolf king took another step forward and ced its nose on the back of San Baos hand. It sniffed it gently and licked it.
San Bao was so excited that he almost jumped up.
This meant that the ck wolf king had epted him, and non, he could make his move!
He raised his hand slightly and ced it on the wolf kings nose. Seeing that it did not dodge, he tried to scratch it with his fingertips.
The ck wolf king narrowed its eyes and seemed to sigh.
San Baos courage grew, and his fingers climbed all the way up to the top of the ck wolf kings head, stroking its fur.
Originally, he thought that the fur of a wild wolf would be very thick and hard, but he did not expect the fur of the ck wolf king to be so smooth and submissive, and it felt extremely good to the touch. If it was a small belly, it would definitely be better.
His gaze could not help but drift downward.
Suddenly, a warning wuwu sound rang in his ear. San Bao immediately retracted his gaze and stared at his finger,pletely unaware of the mockery that shed in the ck wolf kings eyes.
After a brief contact, the ck wolf king took a few steps back and put some distance between him and San Bao. He also tactfully stopped, turned around, and ran toward MO Ruyue.
Mother, Uncle ck Wolf let me touch him! Ive touched him!
He proudly showed off, and when he saw the envious gazes of his siblings, he puffed out his chest and held his head high, extremely proud.
Thats the ck Wolf King. Its not wrong for you to call it uncle.
MO Ruyue rubbed the top of his head and said to the babies, Dont be afraid.
Come here. Let the wolves remember your smell so they wont hurt you by mistake in the future.
On the other side, the ck wolf king was also howling to the sky, using its howls to convey its orders.
The wolf pack in the distance also quickly gathered and lined up behind the ck wolf king, waiting for the babies to make the corresponding move.
With San Bao as an example, the babies were no longer afraid. The first one to walk over was actually the youngest, Tang Tang.
She stopped beside the ck wolf king, and imitated San Bao, bowing and greeting, Uncle ck Wolf, its me, Tang Tang.
This time, the ck wolf king immediately licked the back of her hand, and even took the initiative to use its head to nudge her hand, indicating for her to touch it.
Tang Tang was overjoyed. She still couldnt believe it, but she touched it without hesitation.
Next, the pack of wolves came over one by one, sniffed the back of Tang Tangs hand, and then epted her touch.
It was not until thest wolf left that the ceremony came to a temporary end.
Si Bao appeared on San Baos side.
He didnt have the same treatment as Tang Tang. He had to learn from San Bao and squat down behind him, only then would the ck wolf king sniff the back of his hand.
After that, every boy received the same treatment, without exception.
In the end, when it was Da Baos turn, there was a small interlude. The ck wolf king hit him with its head, pushing him toward the wolf pack.
Da Bao didnt understand what the ck wolf king meant, but MO Ruyue had a vague guess, but she wasnt sure.
Da Bao, you go to the middle of the pack.
She reminded him from behind..
Chapter 373 - 373: Are You Jealous?
Chapter 373: Are You Jealous?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Da Bao turned around to look at her, then walked toward the wolf pack.
All the giant wolves opened up a path for him to walk to the center and automatically formed a circle, surrounding him.
Every wolf lowered their heads and wagged their tails slightly, as if they were worshiping him.
MO Ruyue understood the meaning of this action and looked at Gu Ying in surprise.
Why would the wolf pack submit to a child when the wolf king was still around?
ck Wolf King, whats going on?
MO Ruyue turned to the ck wolf king and asked.
The ck wolf king shook its head. Other than this action, it did not make any other sound.
Da Bao didnt know what was going on. But he still calmly epted this bow.
After the brief interlude, the wolves still followed the previous ceremony to confirm Da Baos smell, then slowly dispersed to allow Da Bao to leave.
Alright, Uncle Liu, Aunt Liu,e over for a moment.
MO Ruyue called the two elders over again, but they clearlycked some couragepared to the babies.
Its okay. They wont hurt you.
MO Ruyue directly walked over, took the two peoples hands, and personally led them to the ck wolf kings side.
Perhaps it had sensed the aura of fear from the two, the ck wolf king only twitched its nose and sniffed, not making any contact with them.
The other wolves followed suit andpleted the identity confirmation from a distance.
Thats good. Ying and I can go out without worry.
As soon as MO Ruyue finished speaking, Da Bao turned around and stared at her.
Youre going out?
Yeah, I told you just now that Ill be going outter. MO Ruyue nodded.
She was still entrusted by people to go out and save people.
Theres a natural disaster outside right now. You want to go out at this time?
Da Baos expression turned cold, and so did his voice.
When have you ever seen me do something Im not confident in? MO Ruyue asked in return.
This kids temper had grown as he grew older and had begun to learn to control her.
No, I wont agree to it.
Da Bao became stubborn and was determined not to let her go.
Alright, lets wait then. MO Ruyue didnt insist and readily agreed.
You wont run away, will you? Da Bao asked suspiciously.
Why will I run away? If I want to leave, Ill leave openly. Mo Ruyue didnt know whether tough or cry.
She pointed to the house not far away and said to the babies, Lets go, Mother will bring you to see our new home here.
She had to think of a way to divert the babies attention. When they found something to do, she would leave without anyone knowing.
Since they didnt have her to lead them, they couldnt leave this space. By the time they realized it, it was already toote.
Of course, MO Ruyue had the idea of sneaking away.
She could see the situation outside, so she knew that the natural disaster was not over yet. It would be dangerous to go out now.
However,pared to the terrifying momentum at the beginning, there were only asional fireballs now. It was clear that it would not be long before the end.
If she followed Da Baos lead, she would lose the golden time to save people. She and Gu Ying had sworn in front of that person that they would do their best to save as many people as possible.
Mother, we didnt bring out any of our chickens, ducks, cows, and sheep. Is it all gone?
Tang Tang walked over, took MO Ruyues hand, and asked her.
I dont know. Maybe theres nothing going on at home. When everything is over, Mother will take you back to take a look, okay?
Although MO Ruyue said this, she had a feeling in his heart that when the time came, it would be hard to say if the Qin Vige would still exist, let alone those livestock.
Even if the Qin Vige was spared, they didnt know when they would be able to return. Those livestock would also not be able to escape death.
It was just that there was no need to say these words out loud and make the babies sad in vain.
Come, lets go take a look with Mother. Maybe well find some surprises.
MO Ruyue saw that her babies were obviously in a bad mood and couldnt bear it. After all, those animals were raised by her babies, so they naturally had different feelings for them.
She led Tang Tang, followed by the boys, and walked toward the house.
Mother, this Did you bring them here?
Tang Tang pushed the door open and was stunned.
No, I put it inter. It looks more like our home.
MO Ruyue didnt tell a white lie. Even if she did, the babies would still be able to tell that this wasnt the livestock they had been feeding.
If her lie could not be exposed, then there would be a meaning to her existence, so she did not want to make the babies sad again.
Yes, but they really do look alike. Tang Tang said in a low voice.
She and San Bao were the ones who took care of the animals the most. She was in charge of the chickens, ducks, and dairy sheep, while San Bao was in charge of the cows, horses, and pigs.
The more effort one put in, the harder it would be to lose.
MO Ruyue gently stroked Tang Tangs head and did not intend to continueforting her.
This was only the smallest of the countless rejections, and she had to learn to adapt to it.
This courtyard was built ording to the scale, and it was more than twice asrge as the previous courtyard.
It wasnt difficult to build this courtyard. After all, MO Ruyue was the master of this space. She could control the building materials to fly with a thought.
With a detailed blueprint, it was not difficult to build such a courtyard without building blocks.
Lets go take a look at your rooms. Oh right, move your things down from the carriageter. Although youve left your original rooms, you cant let go of your studies.
MO Ruyue pped her hands and gathered the scattered babies who were looking around in the courtyard. She assigned them new tasks. Wow, shouldnt you be sleeping on the brick bed? Why did it be a bed? Look at me, Im not even afraid of falling down from above!
There are so many books on the shelves. When did Mother set them up?
If only Mr. Du was here.
Among the chattering, a single sentence entered Gu Yings ears.
He raised his eyebrows and looked at MO Ruyue.
Hes the private tutor I invited for the babies. When I was about to inform
him, he wasnt at home. I had no choice but to leave him a note, but I dont know if he received it or if he managed to escape.
MO Ruyue said frankly, but she was also a little worried in her heart.
She wondered how the Bai family and Elder Tian were doing. She hoped that heaven would help them.
I can see that the babies have deep feelings for him, and they still miss him.
Gu Ying said again. This time, MO Ruyues gaze was not right.
Ying, you Are you jealous?
Yeah, a little.
Gu Ying also said very frankly. He didnt have any intention of hiding it at all. He was so calm that even MO Ruyue, who had asked the question, was a little stunned.
Ying, whats the smell of vinegar? MO Ruyue slowly broke into a smile and whispered to Gu Ying.
It cant be dipped in the dumpling, its too sour. Gu Ying also said in a low voice.
The two of them did not forget that although the babies were in the house, they coulde out at any time.
Ruyue, my room and your uncles room dont need to be so luxurious. The two of us cant take it.
Aunt Liu walked out of her room and saw Gu Ying standing under the jujube tree in the courtyard. MO Ruyue was fiddling with the grass in the stables.
Aunt Liu, you and Uncle have worked hard your entire life. Whats wrong with living in a better ce? Its okay if youre not used to it now. Youll get used to it as you live.
MO Ruyue had never mistreated the people she thought highly of, so when she was building this courtyard, she used a lot of the gifts she had received. Even the main room of some rich families might not be as well decorated as the room of the Liu couple..
Chapter 374 - 374: Guilt
Chapter 374: Guilt
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
We just have to work hard. Its good enough that we have a ce to stay. Theres really no need to do this.
Aunt Liu also knew that she wouldnt be able to persuade MO Ruyue. Besides, she had good intentions. It wasnt right to keep rejecting her.
I say, you should put your heart back into your stomach. Go and take a look. The babies rooms are the same. I like to pamper you all. I cant not want you
MO Ruyue said in a deliberately overbearing manner.
The old couple was used to being frugal, so they were not used to living in such luxury.
However, habits could also be cultivated. Wouldnt they get used to it after living here for a while?
She sensed a gaze on her, so she looked up and met Da Baos scrutinizing gaze.
There was no sun in the space, but it would still change ording to the pattern of 24 hours a day.
A few hourster, it was almost time for the babies to go to bed. MO Ruyue urged them to go to bed early.
Mother, cant we sleepte today? San Bao tried to probe.
You guys should rest for the next two days. You were too tired from the journey. After youve recovered, well have a good Lantern Festival and let you guys rx for another day.
MO Ruyue was prepared to sneak away while they were asleep. How could she agree to his request?
Saving people was like putting out a fire, and time was the most precious.
Mother, the Lantern Festival has already passed San Bao said in a low voice. MO Ruyue was stunned. Only then did she remember that they had been on the road for three days. Along the way, they had tried to stay as far away from the town as possible and had not noticed that they had missed the Lantern Festival.
It doesnt matter. When youre done resting, Mother will give you an even more special holiday. Although its only for the few of us, itll definitely be the most unforgettable one.
MO Ruyue immediately promised.
Before she was ready to leave, she had spent a lot of money to buy a lot of fireworks and firecrackers, as well as to put up a stock ofnterns. She was afraid that she would miss the Lantern Festival.
Now, it really came in handy.
Alright, then lets go to sleep.
Although San Baos request had been rejected, he did not appear to be dejected. On the contrary, he was filled with anticipation.
When MO Ruyue finally coaxed them to sleep and quietly walked out of the main house, another hour had passed.
Gu Ying was waiting for her in the yard, with a few giant wolves lying beside him. The yard door was not closed.
Lets go, Ying.
MO Ruyue walked over with a huge medicine box on her back. She then handed one to Gu Ying.
This was an upgrade of her original first aid kit. Its capacity wasrger than before, and it could hold more medical equipment and medicine.
Even so, MO Ruyue knew that in the face of such a natural disaster, everything was like a cup of water on a burning cart of firewood. However, she was willing to try her best.
Bing Er, arent you worried about what will happen to the babies after they wake up?
Gu Ying looked at the few rooms that had already turned off the lights. He believed that Bing Er had already noticed that her eldest son, Da Bao, had already woken up and was looking at them.
If he really wanted to stop us, he would have alreadye out. Lets go.
After MO Ruyue finished speaking, she quickly walked out. She was afraid that if she turned around, she would stay.
Gu Ying followed her silently, and behind him, the slightly open window closed quietly.
After leaving the courtyard for some distance, the two stopped and checked their equipment again.
In order to make it easier to save people, in addition to arge medicine box, they also brought the necessary small lifting tools, oxygen tanks, and simple gas masks.
As for the clean water and food, they could be temporarily stored in the medium and used at any time.
After the inspection, the two of them disappeared from where they were and returned to the real world.
It was alreadyte at night outside, but the mes in the distance burned half the sky red, allowing the two to easily see the changes in their surroundings.
The trees around them had all fallen, burned into pieces of ck charcoal, and were still emitting smoke.
If the situation here is so tragic, then the county
MO Ruyue couldnt finish her sentence. Now that she had the babiespany, she was no longer the assassin who regarded human lives as worthless, and her heart was a little softer and warmer.
In the face of such a natural disaster, no one could stay out of it and remain unmoved after seeing such a tragic scene.
The two of them then released two big ck horses and galloped to the nearest town.
The small city was considered lucky as not a single meteorite fell. However, the sparks from the friction of the meteorites fall still caused several fires in the city. The entire city was gathered to put out the fire.
Ying, were still heading south. The disaster here isnt serious. Well set off after you purify the water.
MO Ruyue quickly made a decision. While Gu Ying was purifying the water, she would also try to treat the people in her hands as easily as possible.
The two of them split up. After about two hours, they quietly left the city and headed to their next destination.
Just like that, they saved people along the way. When night fell again, they had only walked 50 miles.
Bing Er, at this speed, we dont know how long it will be before we reach the county.
Gu Ying was worthy of being the person who understood MO Ruyue the most. He knew very well that what she wanted to know the most now was news about Imperial Doctor Tian and the others.
They would definitely not stay in the county and would listen to her all the way north. Perhaps they would meet on the way if fate brought them together.
Lets just wait and see. Well save as many as we can. This is the only reason we can get those two treasures.
MO Ruyue sighed. No matter how worried she was, she had to fulfill the oath she made that day.
In front of that mysterious person, she had promised that she would do her best to save them.
After that, the two of them continued to save people as they walked. However, as they went further south, the time they stopped for gradually increased.
Many cities and viges here had been struck by the disaster. Some viges had even been wiped out. No one had survived. Even their corpses had turned to dust, and there was no way to find them.
During this period, MO Ruyue had returned to the interspace once. However, she had deliberately chosen to return at night when the babies were already asleep.
She knew that her sudden departure would definitely make the babies angry, and she also knew that they would understand her.
That was why she felt even more guilty. Before shepleted her mission of saving the people, she felt that she could not walk to her babies and say, Im back,
When he returned to the medium this time, MO Ruyue prepared a new batch of medicinal herbs and food. The previous ones had already been used up, and there was nothing left.
Just as MO Ruyue was about to leave, a light suddenly lit up in the distant courtyard. From this side, it should be Da Baos room.
Could it be that he had telepathy and knew that she had returned?
The yard was quiet. The wolves were now living in the yard and would not make any noise without her summoning.
Even though she was so far away, he could still sense that she had returned.
This kind of tacit understanding made MO Ruyue feel that it was incredible..
Chapter 375 - 375: Surgery
Chapter 375: Surgery
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
There was amotion in the courtyard. It seemed that Da Bao hade out. MO Ruyue didnt think too much and immediately left the medium.
Bing Er, you dont look well, are you tired?
Gu Ying walked over and caressed her cheek) then pulled her into his arms.
Ying, I just feel very sorry.
MO Ruyue shook her head and closed her eyes in Gu Yings arms, emptying her mind.
After MO Ruyue turned around and walked south for more than a hundred miles, she finally saw a familiar face.
As soon as their horses entered the city, they were stopped.
Lady Qin, is it really you?
You are Young Master Bai?
MO Ruyue looked at the familiar face in front of her and immediately got off the horse.
Its me, Lady Qin. Were you also here just now? Oh, right, nows not the time to talk about this. Seeing you, Old Master will be saved!
Bai Shiyuan had only said two words before he revealed a piece of grim news to MO Ruyue. That was, something had happened to the Bai familys master, Bai Jinshang.
Ying, take Young Master with you. Lets go!
MO Ruyue looked at Bai Shiyuans ragged clothes and his wounded appearance, and she was secretly shocked.
If the prepared Bai family suffered such a heavy blow, what kind of purgatory would the unprepared citizens go through?
Lady Qin, we left the city in time when the natural disaster came and hid in the suburbs. The terrain there is wide and open, so even if the heavenly fire falls, we can scatter and avoid it.
I entered the city to find a doctor to treat Masters injuries. He was injured by the rocks that sshed up when the heavenly fire fell, and his injuries are not
Butler Bai exined the situation in a hurry, and Mo Rue immediately asked, Wheres Imperial Doctor Tian? Didnt he and his family leave with the Bai family? Why do you need to find another doctor?
Master knows that you value Imperial Doctor Tian very much, so he had already sent people to send him and his family away. We are a big family and business, so it will take time to transfer things. Besides, there are still many people waiting to be settled down.
We left about two days after you left, so we only came here when the natural disaster happened.
Although Butler Bai had said that Imperial Doctor Tian had already left, the two old people were very old and could not withstand the long distance bumps of the high-speed road. It was hard to say where they were now.
Perhaps if they were one step ahead, they would be slower than the Bai family.
MO Ruyue didnt dare to continue thinking about it. The most important thing now was to cure Bai Jinshangs injury.
Under the guidance of the Butler Bai, they sped out of the city. Large and small impact craters could be seen in the vast wilderness at any time. One could imagine how shocking the scene would be when a natural disaster came.
After galloping for the time it took to brew a cup of tea, the two of them finally saw a few carriages in the wilderness in the distance, as well as some tents set up.
Just as they were approaching, a few people who looked like guards immediately stood up and looked over. When they saw that it was MO Ruyue, they shouted in surprise, Lady Qin is here, its Lady Qin!
Then, more people appeared from the carriages and tents.
Everyones face was filled with surprise and at the same time, unconceble sorrow. It was obvious that Bai Jinshang had been prepared for this natural disaster, but there were still people who lost their family and friends.
MO Ruyue got down from the horse and looked at the man standing in front of her.
Young Master, dont worry, Im here.
Just by looking at Bai Shiyuans expression, she could tell how critical Bai Jinshangs situation was.
Find me a few strong guards. I want to draw my blood and then Ill do an operation. No one is allowed to disturb me before I leave the tent!
MO Ruyue quickly ordered as she walked into the tent.
She didnt have time to chat with them one by one, but she had to save as much time as possible.
The tent prepared by the Bai family was not the kind that could only amodate one or two or three people, but a superrge tent that could amodate more than a dozen people without feeling crowded.
As soon as MO Ruyue entered the tent, she smelled a strong medicinal smell, mixed with the pungent smell of blood and burning skin.
There was a simple wooden bed in the middle of the tent, covered with a thick mattress and cushion. The old man lying inside was deeply buried in it, and only some of his white hair could be seen.
She immediately walked forward and lifted the nket covering Bai Jinshangs body. Only then did she realize that there were a few wooden sticks supporting the nket, preventing the weight of the nket from pressing on him.
Bai Jinshangs exposed skin was still red, and there were signs of burns.
The rest of the body was wrapped in bandages, from which blood and medicine seeped out.
Have you prepared the people I want? We have to start the operation now, or itll be toote!
MO Ruyue saw that Bai Jinshang was already on the verge of death. If she hade a littleter, even a great overarching golden immortal would not have been able to save him.
Theyre already here. Theyre just waiting outside.
After Bai Shiyuan answered, he immediately asked, Lady Qin, how is my father? You must save him!
I will. Now, all of you, get out. Ying will help me draw blood and be my assistant in the operation.
If you want Master Bai to be safe, no one is allowed toe in and disturb me during my operation for any reason. Do you understand?
MO Ruyue emphasized for thest time.
She was going to bring Bai Jinshang into her space for surgery. The conditions outside were too harsh. Even if the surgery was sessful, Bai Jinshang would not be able to survive the post-surgery infection.
Yes, Lady Qin, we all remember.
Bai Shiyuan immediately agreed and led everyone out of the room.
Bing Er, this is too risky.
Gu Ying said disapprovingly.
The secret of space was too shocking, it was not something that the people of this era could understand.
The babies and the Liu couple could ept it so quickly because they had absolute trust in MO Ruyue.
The Bai family had a good rtionship with MO Ruyue, but who could guarantee that the news would not be leaked?
Im not afraid with you around.
MO Ruyues words made Gu Yings eyes soften.
Im going out.
He didnt say anything more. He turned around and walked out of the tent, bringing the blood collection tools to draw blood.
MO Ruyue directly took Bai Jinshang into the space, first settled him in the operating room, and then came out to simply arrange the bed, making it look like an operation.
Gu Ying would stay outside for a while to prevent anyone from barging in after they entered the space. Although she would have no assistant during the operation, she could stillplete the task on her own.
Gu Ying was very fast, and it didnt take long for him to return with a few blood bags.
I hope theres blood here that you can use. There shouldnt be much blood in the blood bank, and its probably going to expire soon, right?
Okay, Gu Ying, Ill go in first then. Ill have to trouble you to help me keep watch.
MO Ruyue left this sentence and directly shed into the space.
Without her guidance, Gu Ying couldnt enter and exit her space freely, but his task now was to help her guard this empty tent.
Not long after MO Ruyue left, it suddenly became noisy outside. A woman was crying and shouting non-stop.
Lady Qin, Lady Qin, I beg you to save my son, Lady Qin!
Chapter 376 - 376: I Hope You Can Turn Misfortune Into Fortune
Chapter 376: I Hope You Can Turn Misfortune Into Fortune
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Whats going on?
Gu Ying walked out of the tent and frowned at the middle-aged woman who was stopped by the guards.
Although she looked haggard and had silver hair on her temples, it was obvious that she lived afortable life and took good care of herself.
Aunt An, Lady Qin is performing the old masters surgery inside. If you disturb Lady Qin and harm the old master by making such a loud noise, you cant bear it!
One of the guards stopped the woman, while the other bowed to Gu Ying and said, Young Master Ying, this is Aunt An. Her son is our second young master and he was also injured in the previous natural disaster.
Young Master Ying, I beg you, please ask Lady Qin to save my son. Hes about to die, hes my life! Without him, how am I supposed to live!
As Aunt An spoke, she was about to kneel down and kowtow, but she was stopped by the guards. She didnt know whether to stand or kneel.
Shes in surgery. If we leave the patient now, Master Bai will immediately die from blood loss or an infection.
Gu Ying tried to use simple words to make her understand that surgery was not childs y, not to mention that Master Bai was so seriously injured.
How could Even if other doctors are treating people, its not like they cant leave temporarily. My son only has one breath left, and I cant find another doctor now.
Young Master Ying, I beg you, please help me beg Lady Qin!
Aunt An couldnt hear anything else now.
Master Bai and Madam were deeply in love. Even if they had concubines, they rarely entered their rooms. She had to use some means to get pregnant. But from then on, it was even more difficult to see Master Bai.
At least, Madam had given her permission to raise her son by her side, which gave her a little life in her long and lonely days.
But in this natural disaster, her son was so unlucky that he was burned by the rain of fire and almost turned into a charcoal.
She couldnt care about anything else and only wanted to save her son.
Gu Ying had always been a man of few words, and that long sentence just now was already the limit of what he could express to outsiders. Now that he was facing Aunt An, who he couldnt get through to, he didnt want to waste any more time talking to her.
Whats going on? Why are you making so much noise outside Masters tent? Who can bear the responsibility for disturbing Masters recuperation?
Madam Bai rushed over when she heard the news. When she saw Aunt An still crying, her face immediately darkened.
She knew that MO Ruyue had brought a man over. It should be the old friend she had gone to find. As soon as she arrived, she had gone straight into Master Bars tent to start the operation. She didnt expect that Aunt An woulde over to cause trouble after hearing the news.
Aunt An, I know that Cong Er is your precious child, but Old Master is the pir of our Bai family. You should be able to tell whats more important.
Ive watched Cong Er grow up, and I cant bear to leave him either. But if you affect Lady Qins surgery and harm Old Master, I wont let you off!
Madam Bai usually looked kind and amiable, but at this time, her tone was stern and her eyes were cold. She had an aura of power.
Madam, I dont dare to hurt Master. But how difficult is the operation? Its just a short pause to see my son, even if its just some medicine.
Its just a little dy, why does it matter?
An Yiniang said without a care, which also angered Madam Bai.
In such an urgent situation, she was still making a fuss. She immediately said to the guard, Send Aunt An back to the carriage. Without my permission, shes not allowed toe and disturb the old master!
Madam, Madam, please have mercy. Young Master Ying, please talk to Lady Qin and save my familys Shi Cong!
She cried and screamed as she was dragged away by the guards.
Young Master Ying, Im sorry. Ive made a fool of myself at such an urgent time.
Madam Bai said to Gu Ying apologetically, at the same time casting a worried look at the tent.
Will my old master be alright? Ill leave everything to Lady Qin, I beg her to cure the old master!
Madam, dont worry.
Seeing that the matter had been resolved, Gu Ying prepared to return to the tent.
Young Master, if you need anything, just let the guard know. We will definitely satisfy your requests as soon as possible!
Madam Bai couldnt help but say. If possible, she really wished that she could enter the tent with Master Bai and personally apany him. However, she also knew that this would undoubtedly cause more trouble for MO Ruyue.
She had heard that the process of the surgery was very dangerous. It required the patient to be disemboweled, then the heart, liver, and intestines had to be cleaned up, and finally the stomach had to be stitched up. This was not a method that ordinary people could perform.
Since it was so dangerous, of course, she would not let anyone harass Lady Qin.
Madam Bai stood outside for a long time after Gu Ying returned to the tent. Then, she turned around and left.
Gu Ying heard themotion outside gradually die down. From the carriage came the faint sound of scolding and crying. It must have been Madam Bai who had gone to teach Aunt An a lesson.
However, all of this had nothing to do with him. It was better to guard the tent and not let outsiders find out her secret.
After Madam Bai went to teach Lady An a lesson, she returned to another rtively smaller tent.
As soon as they entered, Bai Shijiao came up to them and asked anxiously,
Mother, Lady Qin will definitely cure Father, right?
Yes, I heard that only Lady Qin has sessfully performed the operation on a person. Now, your father can only count on her.
Madam Bai sighed.
After such a natural disaster, not to mention not being able to find a doctor, even if they could find one, their medical skills might not be as good as MO Ruyue.
It could be said that it was Bai Jinshangs good fortune to be able to meet MO
Ruyue here.
It would be great if Big Brother could be here?
Bai Shijiao said dejectedly. She immediately realized that she had touched a
sore spot and immediately shut her mouth.
When the natural disaster struck, in order to let the Bai familys convoy avoid the refugees, Bai Shiyuan brought people to the rear and disappeared.
Even now, his life and death were still unknown, so much so that the entire Bai family had already silently acknowledged his absence.
Only Madam Bai firmly believed that Bai Shiyuan was only recuperating after being injured somewhere. One day, he would return to the Bai family, to her
Since we can meet Lady Qin here, it means that your father is blessed, and its also the good fortune of our Bai family. I believe that your big brother will also be able to turn misfortune into fortune.
Madam Bai took her daughter into her arms, as if she wasforting her, but also herself.
On the other side, in the space, MO Ruyue had alsopleted the preoperative preparation and was about to start the operation on Bai Jinshang.
He was lying on the operating table, with various monitoring and life-support equipment attached to his body. If it were not for the slight rise and fall of his stomach, he would have almost been dead.
Master Bai, I hope you can turn misfortune into fortune.
MO Ruyue said sincerely, and then picked up the scalpel.
Bai Jinshangs main injury was still the damage to his organs caused by the hit, and there was a certain degree of bleeding in his body.
There were still burns on the surface of his body, butpared to the extent of his internal injuries, it was not considered serious.
MO Ruyue first dealt with the damage to his organs and repaired the damaged blood vessels in his body to eliminate the hidden dangers of internal injuries.
After that, she used the diluted spiritual spring water to wash the exposed organs once again to carry out thest step of the security measure.
After making sure that there was no problem, she sutured the wound again..
Chapter 377 - 377: Do Your Best To Save Her
Chapter 377: Do Your Best To Save Her
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
During the operation, Bai Jinshang was still in a state of massive blood loss. Although MO Ruyue also used silver needles to seal the acupoints to stop the bleeding, Bai Jinshang was still old and his blood vessels were fragile. This method would cause his blood vessels to tear.
So MO Ruyue could only speed up the operation while transfusing blood to him. Unfortunately, she was alone. The only assistant who could be her, Gu Ying, had to stay outside to prevent others from breaking in.
It could be said that this surgery was the most difficult one MO Ruyue had ever done.
Fortunately, she had solved all the problems perfectly.
The most difficult part was done. Next was the treatment of the burn.
Bai Jinshangs burns were not serious, but the environment outside was very bad. If it caused a second infection, the consequences would be very serious.
MO Ruyue still used the diluted spiritual spring water to wash Bai Jinshangs scalded parts a few times. The condition of the burns was visibly better.
In order to prevent dependence, she would dilute the spring water to a certain degree, which would not only speed up the recovery speed, but also not cause bad addiction to the human body.
After washing the scalded wound, MO Ruyue applied medicine to the cut and the burn, and then bandaged it.
The entire operation and postoperative process took nearly four hours, plus the forty-eight hours of post-operation observation, all of which werepleted by the time eleration in the space.
When MO Ruyue and Bai Jinshang reappeared in the tent, it had only been two hours since she had disappeared.
Are you tired?
Gu Ying walked over, touched MO Ruyues cheek, and asked softly.
Im not tired. Ive already rested in the space. I washed up, ate, and slept. I didnt forget anything.
She paused for a moment and continued, But I didnt go back, because Its toote.
Gu Ying knew very well where she was referring to when she said go back.
Last night, when she came out of the space, she was already in a bad mood. Now that she had entered the space again and still hadnt returned home, she must be feeling even worse.
Theres a reason for all of this. Youre putting all your energy into saving people right now. The babies will understand you.
When Gu Ying was in front of MO Ruyue, he would always be more talkative. As the person who understood her the most, he could even keenly sense all the subtle changes in MO Ruyues emotions like a twin.
Well, I think we should wait for Master Bais condition to stabilize a little before we continue to head south. We should fulfill our promise to that senior as soon as possible, so that we can return to the space earlier and apologize to the babies.
Although it wasnt Mo Ruyues first time leaving the babies for so long, this time she left without saying goodbye. The meaning was different, and even the environment she faced was different.
Therefore, she felt even more guilty, and for the first time, she wanted to escape.
She was afraid that her actions would disappoint her babies, but she knew very well that they were a group of sensible and considerate babies. This contradictory feeling often tore at each other in her heart.
Lets set up this ce first. We should also call Madam Bai and the others over. After all, I cant stay here forever. In the end, Ill still have to rely on them to take care of it.
As MO Ruyue spoke, she spread out some blood-stained strips of cloth, cotton, and the bed sheets that had been changed during the operation, creating a fake operation scene.
Soon after, Gu Ying informed the guards outside the door, and Madam Bai rushed over with Bai Shijiao.
Lady Qin, hows our master?
Madam Bai asked anxiously as soon as she entered the tent. She also looked at the person lying on the bed.
The surgery was very sessful, but the patient is still in critical condition.
He still needs to be taken care of.
I called all of you here because I have some things to take note of in nursing. Also, this ce needs to be cleaned up. The dirty environment will greatly increase the risk of infection.
By the way, wheres the young master?
MO Ruyue suddenly interjected and saw the mother and daughters expressions suddenly be gloomy.
My big brother When the natural disaster happened, my big brother led his men to the back of the convoy to prevent the refugees from scattering. In the end, a fireball fell and cut off the road, and we have lost contact with him.
Mother has sent people out to look for him many times, but theres still no news.
Theres actually such a thing
Bai Shiyuans appearance appeared in MO Ruyues mind, and she also hoped that heaven would help the good.
Okay, now Im going to tell you some things to take note of after the operation. Ill stay here for another day to observe the situation. Then, Ill head south. There are more people waiting for me to save them.
After she finished speaking, she began to tell Madam Bai about the things to take note of. At the same time, she wrote them down in case something happened and they remembered it wrong in a hurry.
After a long while, there was already a thick stack of paper on the table, and it was full of words. MO Ruyue then stopped.
Alright, there shouldnt be anything left out. As long as we follow the instructions, there shouldnt be any major problems.
As she spoke, she took out a few bottles of medicine and a can of water.
This medicine is divided into external application and oral consumption. Remember not to make a mistake. This water is also used to clean the wound.
Three times a day. One tube of this is enough each time.
MO Ruyue took out a medium-sized syringe and handed it to Madam Bai.
The bottle of water was diluted spirit spring water. It was very effective in healing wounds and burns. It could also help Bai Jinshang recover quickly.
Lady Qin, I really dont know how to thank you. Youve given my Bai family a new life. Even if we work like cows and horses for you, we cant repay this great kindness.
Master Bai had already saved two lives from MO Ruyue. Madam Bai and Bai Shijiao had also been saved by her. It wasnt an exaggeration to say that she was the benefactor of the family.
Madam Bai, you dont have to do this. Since we are fated, I will do my best to save you.
After MO Ruyue finished speaking, she turned back to look at Master Bai on the bed and said, Although the operation was sessful this time, Master Bars vitality has been damaged. In my opinion, you should head north.
The weather in the north is cold, which is good for the recovery of wounds. Besides, the environment in the wilderness is not good, which is not good for
Master Bais recovery.
As for Master Bai I hope he will be auspicious.
Bai Jinshang had already been in the space for forty-eight hours of post-operation monitoring, and his condition had basically stabilized.
To be on the safe side, MO Ruyue stayed in the Bai familys tent for another day to prevent any idents from happening.
At the same time, in order to find Bai Shivuans whereabouts, she secretly picked a few wolves from the wolf pack and let them smell Bai Shiyuans personal belongings, then let them out to track his whereabouts.
Madam Bais bed was originally in the tent, but because Bai Shijiao had nightmares at night, she had to be by her side to sleep for a while. She had no choice but to move to her daughters tent, but she woulde over to guard
Bai Jinshang during the day.
Lady Qin, fortunately youre here, otherwise Master I was afraid we wouldnt be able to get past this.
Madam Bai sat at the table with MO Ruyue. As they talked, they kept an eye on the bed.
At this time, she should be dealing with the trivial matters of the Bai family. It was because of this that she missed weing MO Ruyue yesterday..
Chapter 378 - 378: Unconscious
Chapter 378: Unconscious
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Madam Bai, this is also because Master Bai is a good man and heaven helps him. If not for the fact that Master Bai was in the city at that time, we would have missed him.
MO Ruyue didnt leave the others behind just because he wanted to save Master Bai.
The task of entering the city to save people fell on Gu Yings shoulders.
Although his medical skills were not as good as hers, it was not a problem for him to get a doctors position in Huichun Hall.
If only my Yuan Er could be as lucky as him.
When Madam Bai mentioned Bai Shiyuan, her eyes could not help but redden.
She and Bai Jinshang had been in love for many years, but they only had one son and one daughter. Naturally, they loved them like treasures.
Bai Shiyuan was the future head of the Bai family, and the couple had high hopes for him. If he were to be gone just like that, not only would the couple
not be able to handle it, the entire Bai family would be in danger of copsing, and their future would be bleak.
Madam Bai, you should take care of the person in front of you first. Master Bai still needs your care. The Bai family still needs you to support it.
MO Ruyue was really not good atforting people. Besides, at this time, any words offort were pale and powerless. It was more practical to do something.
Madam Bai silently shed tears. She couldnt ept the fact that she might never see her son again. However, she also admitted that MO Ruyues words sounded a little cold, but they were not crude.
MO Ruyue sat opposite to her for a while before suddenly standing up, giving Madam Bai a fright.
Madam Bai, how many guards are there in the residence? Do you have ten people that could go out with me and save the people?
There are. Previously, Yuan Er took away more than a dozen people. There are still about thirty guards left in the carriage, waiting for Lady Qins orders at any time.
Although the Bai family had been keeping a low profile, they still needed a sufficient number of guards to ensure their safety when they were forced to migrate due to natural disasters.
Therefore, Bai Jinshang pretended to hire a few bodyguards from the bodyguard agency to be his guards. In fact, they were all private assets of the Bai family, and the bodyguards were all private guards of the Bai family.
Ten people will be enough. Also, bring stretchers and three carriages. The faster, the better!
Before MO Ruyues voice fell, she was already outside the tent.
Quickly go, follow Lady Qins instructions!
Although Madam Bai didnt know what had happened, she instinctively listened to MO Ruyues arrangements and unhesitatingly sent out half of her guards.
After the time it took to brew a cup of tea, seven or eight horses surrounded three carriages, following behind a ck horse, and galloped away from the Bai familys campsite.
Aowu!
The howls of wolves could be faintly heard from the distance, which attracted more responses.
A guard whipped his horse and moved closer to MO Ruyue.
Lady Qin, there are wolves in the distance. It sounds like the scale of the wolf pack is not small and they are blocking our way.
Food was already scarce in the mountains during winter. Now, with the addition of natural disasters, it would lead to the appearance of hungry wolves. Although they had the advantage in numbers, they had to be on guard.
Its okay, just follow me.
MO Ruyue said and continued to rush forward.
The guard could only follow after her. Although he knew that she was stronger than the group of them, he did not dare to be slow.
After running for another thirty miles, the traces of natural disasters became even more obvious. They even passed by the ruins of a vige that had beenpletely destroyed by a heavenly fireball.
Everyone looked at the huge pit that appeared out of thin air and the scorched earth. They didnt dare to imagine what was inside.
WUwUwU Aowu!
The wolfs howl sounded very close. Strangely, it was as if it was guiding the way. MO Ruyue also adjusted her direction every time the wolfs howl sounded.
Just as the guards were in shock, they suddenly saw a few people and even a few horses lying on the ground at the foot of a slope not far away.
That is Thats the young master!
There were some guards who were specially trained as scouts and had extraordinary eyesight. They immediately saw the familiar clothes of the person lying on the ground.
After he carefully identified it, he immediately shouted.
MO Ruyue was already increasing her speed. The distance of nearly a hundred meters was covered in an instant.
She did not wait for the big ck horse to stop. She flipped and jumped off the horse. The tip of her foot touched the ground lightly and she flew over the t ground.
By the time she knelt down beside the white-robed young master, the other guards had also arrived.
Taking a closer look, the unconscious person was indeed Bai Shiyuan. However, out of the dozen or so people that she had originally taken away, only six or seven were left, and all of them were unconscious.
Stretcher, quick, get everyone onto the carriage.
MO Ruyue immediately took out a small porcin bottle and dripped a drop of the liquid into Bai Shiyuans mouth before letting the guards carry him into the carriage.
The others were treated equally, and after a while, everyone was carried into the carriage.
Okay, I need two people to stay in the other two cars and keep an eye on the unconscious people. If someone vomits while unconscious, make sure to control him face down in time. Dont let him choke on the vomit.
After MO Ruyues instructions, the guards quickly finished their work. They immediately got on the carriage and galloped back in the direction of the campsite.
This time, MO Ruyue didnt follow immediately. Instead, she used the excuse of checking the surrounding environment to find out the reason and stayed for the time being.
She didnt leave any guards behind to help, only saying that she would catch up in a while.
After making sure that the carriage had left, she walked around the surroundings, waiting for the wolves toe and meet her. Then, she stored them in the space at the first moment.
Now that there were refugees everywhere, the people whocked food would inevitably be tempted by the wolves. No matter how smart and cunning they were, how could they escape from the starving humans?
Just as MO Ruyue was about to leave, she suddenly noticed that not far from where Bai Shiyuan and the others were lying, some strange fungi had broken out of the ground and had gathered into a small patch. It was obvious that they had been picked.
Could this be the reason why they were unconscious?
MO Ruyue dug out all the fungi and ced them in a jade box. Then she mounted her horse and chased after the carriage that had left.
No matter what the fungus was for, she would find out through various experiments.
The big ck horse was extremely fast. Even though it was a long timete, it caught up with the carriages before they returned to the camp.
Madam, Lady Qin has saved the young master!
A guard came back to report in advance. At that time, Madam Bai was feeding Master Bai medicine. When she heard this, the spoon in her hand tilted and fell to the ground. It was the maidservant at the side who caught it quickly, so that the medicine bowl did not break.
Mother, Ill stay here and take care of Father. Quickly go and see brother!
Bai Shijiao was also waiting on him. Although she was also surprised and happy, she did not forget that her father was still lying on the hospital bed.
Madam Bai immediately came back to her senses and turned to Master Bai, who was still unconscious. Master, our son is back. Ill go take a look. Ill be back soon.
Master Bai seemed to have heard this. A tear suddenly fell from the corner of his eye, and his eyeballs rolled under his eyelids, as if he was trying to wake up.
Dont worry, with Lady Qin here, Yuan Er will definitely be fine!
Madam Bai consoled her with tears in her eyes and nodded at Bai Shijiao.
Then, she lifted her skirt and jogged out of the tent.
As soon as she stepped out of the door, she bumped into a few guards carrying a stretcher and a simple wooden bed running toward her. The person lying on the stretcher was Bai Shiyuan!
Yuan Er!
Madam Bai saw her beloved sons face covered in blood and unconscious appearance. She cried out in pain and her body swayed. The maid behind her caught her in time..
Chapter 379 - 379: Looking For The Antidote
Chapter 379: Looking For The Antidote
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue also hurried over behind her. When she passed by Madam Bai, she stopped for a moment and said, Madam Bai, Im here. Dont worry.
Lady Qin, Im begging you!
Madam Bai was so grateful that she shed tears. At this time, even if she was asked to spend all her familys wealth to be Mo Ruyues ve, she would not say anything.
She had saved the entire family, so there was nothing she could not let go of.
MO Ruyue did not say anything and went straight into the tent. Not long after, Bai Shijiao and two other maidservants came out.
Mother, Lady Qin said that she wanted to treat brothers injuries and asked me to take you back to the tent to rest and wait for news.
What about your fathers medicine?
Madam Bai stopped mid-sentence and shook her head. Look at me, with Lady Qin here, how could I forget these.
Although she really wanted to wait outside the door, Bai Shijiao used the excuse that she had not recovered from her anger and was overworked as an excuse to bring her back to rest.
After the guards sent the people into the tent, they were also driven out by MO Ruyue. She had to immediately enter theboratory to test theposition of the fungus, so of course she couldnt leave anyone in the tent to watch.
However, there was no Gu Ying to help guard the door today, so the risk was a bit high.
She could only adjust the time in the space to avoid the risk. However, the babies were also in the space now. If she adjusted the time flow in the space, it would definitely affect them.
MO Ruyue did not want to affect her babies because of anyone, but this was an urgent matter. Bai Shiyuans significance to the entire Bai family was self-evident, so she should try her best to save him.
Just as MO Ruyue was about to enter the space, she suddenly heard the sound of hurried footsteps from outside.
Young Master Ying.
The guards outside the tent greeted the person one after another, and then the tents curtain was lifted.
Ying, youre back just in time.
MO Ruyue let out a long sigh of relief. With Gu Ying outside, she could bepletely at ease.
Although she might still have to adjust the flow of time in the space for the experiment, she could reduce the magnitude of the adjustment to the minimum, so it would not affect the babies too much.
Yes. I heard the call of the wolf Dack and knew that something might have happened here, so I rushed back.
Ever since Gu Ying had entered the mirror valley with MO Ruyue, he had be extremely sensitive to wolves.
The camp was far away from the town, and the ce where Bai Shiyuan was found was even further away. By right, he should not have heard the wolfs howls at all, but at that time, the wolfs howls rang in Gu Yings ears, as if they were very close.
He immediately bandaged the injured man on his hand and then hurried back to the camp. He just happened to catch MO Ruyue who was about to enter the medium.
I was originally apanying Madam Bai, but the wolf pack informed me after they found Bai Shiyuan, so I brought him back. Fortunately, I made it in time, and hes still alive. I used the vitality reinforcement liquid to protect everyones vitality.
Although these peoples external injuries were heavy, they werent fatal. However, at that time, their faces were already covered in ayer of ck qi, and they werent far from death. I found some strange bacteria strains in the ce where they were unconscious, and I suspect that they might have been poisoned by mistake.
I understand. You have to verify whats wrong with these strains. Gu Ying immediately understood what MO Ruyue was going to do next.
Go in without worry, Ill be outside.
He held MO Ruyues hands and gave his firm support.
Because of her deep inner energy, her hands were always warm. Even in the cold of the snow, it felt like she was holding a pair of warm jade.
Okay, Ill go now.
MO Ruyue smiled slightly. The two of them looked at each other, and everything was conveyed without words.
However, after the experiment started, MO Ruyue realized that she had encountered a tricky problem from the beginning.
The sample that was sent into the instrument showed unknown data and could not be identified.
How did this happen? MO Ruyue said in surprise.
Theputer in herb had automatically imported all the virus data, as well as the data of all the prescriptions and herbs that could be found in medical books, including the data of the virus toxicology experiments she had done before. It could be said to be a well-rounded database.
If she could find matching data in such a database, it meant that the fungi species did not exist in this time and space.
Thinking of this sudden meteorite rain, a vague idea suddenly appeared in MO Ruyues mind.
Could it be that the fungi were attached to the meteorites and brought to the surface?
However, what kind of fungus could still survive after experiencing such friction in the atmosphere and being burned at such high temperatures? This vitality was really too terrifying.
If that was the case, she had to find more samples to support her conjecture.
MO Ruyue didnt hesitate to leave the space and tell Gu Ying what she had just discovered.
Gu Ying, if my guess is right, then the natural disaster was only the first wave.
The next bacteria, or even other things, is the second wave that is even more terrifying.
Gu Yings expression was also grave. After experiencing the technological boom in his previous life, they were very clear about what it meant to discover a new poison.
Ill go find a sample. Wait for me.
Before Gu Yings voice had died away, he had already left the tent and disappeared into the night.
An hourter, Gu Ying returned with a jade box full of bacteria samples in his bag.
Bing Er, not every crater has bacteria, but they definitely make up arge proportion! Your worry mighte true.
Gu Yings expression was solemn. No matter how cold he was to others, in the face of such a disaster, no one could escape, his expression would still change.
Im going to speed up. This isnt something that anyone can do alone. I dont want to stay in the space for the rest of my life. MO Ruyue said in a small voice.
Bai Jinshang and Bai Shiyuan were both unconscious, so she was not afraid that they would hear her secret. The guards outside were far away, so they had no chance to eavesdrop.
She took the package and was about to enter the space when Gu Ying pulled
her hand.
Bing Er, do you still remember the two beads I got? I dont know the use of one of them, but could it be effective on this strain?
Gu Ying said as he took out the two beads.
One of the beads was obviously darker in color, and there seemed to be some cloud-like objects floating inside, which looked much more turbid.
The other bead was crystal clear and extremely pure green.
MO Ruyues eyes lit up.
This wasnt impossible. That senior wouldnt give him something useless, so this pearl might be of use at this time.
But you can still use this pearl, so you have to go in with me.
MO Ruyues brows furrowed tightly. She wanted to bring Bai Shiyuan into theboratory as well. After all, he might have already eaten these strains and could observe the clinical effects of the experiment.
Although she had a good rtionship with the Bai family, it seemed a little unreasonable to use Bai Shiyuan as an experimental subject.
However, there was a difference between being ab rat and being incurable. It seemed that only the first method had a chance of survival.
I have an idea!
This time, MO Ruyue walked out of the tent and went directly to the tent of the Bai familys mother and daughter.
Lady Qin, youre saying that youre going to bring Yuan Er to find the antidote?
But Madam Bai said in surprise, Hes unconscious now. Wont he be a burden to you?
What she didnt mention was that there were seven or eight other guards with the same symptoms as Bai Shiyuan, who were also unconscious.. Could it be that MO Ruyue wanted to bring these people along?
Chapter 380 - 380: A Huge Crisis
Chapter 380: A Huge Crisis
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Although my abilities are limited, its not difficult for me to bring a person with Ying. However, if Madam Bai cant bear to part with your son, then I wont force you.
If MO Ruyue wanted to find a white mouse, it was not Bai Shiyuans job. The disaster area was so big that it was impossible that they could not even find a person who had identally eaten the strain.
However, in this case, she had to move now. After all,pared to a persons life, there was arger group of people waiting for her to save.
MO Ruyue had never thought that there would be a day when she would appear in this world as a savior. This was simply a huge irony for her former identity as an assassin.
No, dont misunderstand, Lady Qin. I dont mean to not believe you!
Madam Bai understood MO Ruyues intention to leave. She was afraid of being misunderstood and hurriedly exined.
Im just afraid that Yuan Er will be a burden to the two of you. He only has a chance of survival if hes by your side.
Although she was indeed very worried about Bai Shiyuans safety, it was only out of her maternal instincts and not because she did not trust MO Ruyue.
In her opinion, if there was any illness that even MO Ruyue could not cure, then she really could only prepare for her funeral.
Then well be on our way now. Just give me a carriage. I dont need anyone
MO Ruyue wanted to leave the Bai familys line of sight. Of course, he couldnt let Madam Bai send any guards to follow her, so why would she leave?
Alright, Ill arrange for someone to make the preparations.
Madam Bai did not hesitate this time. She did not even ask when the two of them would return or whether they should continue to wait.
Madam Bai, no matter what the result of this trip is, we will be back within two days, because there are more people waiting for us in the south.
Although MO Ruyues words were very cold, she knew very well that once it was proven that the unused jade beads were useful to the fungus, she could even return on the same day.
Soon, Bai Shiyuan, who had just settled down, was loaded into the carriage again. However, this time, the carriage was decorated extremely warmly andfortably. Even in the extremely cold wilderness, the people in the carriage would not freeze to death.
Gu Ying became the coachman again. His big ck horse was tied to the back of the carriage, and it galloped towards the ce where Bai Shiyuan and the others were found.
Madam, should we quietly follow?
A maidservant came over and whispered in Madam Bais ear.
No! Once Lady Qin finds out that weve been following her, we can forget about getting her trust and repairing our rtionship.
Madam Bai immediately rejected the suggestion.
She knew MO Ruyues personality very well. It was not easy to be so close to her, but to destroy this trust, she only needed a single impulsive thought.
Dont mention such things in the future. Whoever makes such a suggestion again will leave the Bai family on their own!
Madam Bai scolded sternly, warning everyone who had their own thoughts.
Although it was a time of turmoil and peoples hearts were unstable, it didnt mean that the Bai familys roots were gone. She was still here, and her daughter was still here.
Master Bai and Bai Shiyuan were not dead yet, so it was still too early for some people to jump out.
The maidservant who had made the suggestion just now blushed. After listening to the reprimand, she left in a hurry.
Mother, your room, it has be disloyal. It seems that the previous cleaning was not enough.
Although Bai Shijiao was still young, it did not mean that she was immature.
With the Bai familys background, there was no such thing as a pure and innocent girl.
Even before she was ten years old, Madam Bai had begun to teach her how to manage the household affairs. She had even learned it ording to the standards of a first-rank wife.
So now, she could infer a lot of things just by listening and watching.
I heard that your second brother is dying. Hes that persons precious, and if hes really gone, its hard to say how crazy shell be.
The test just now was only the first step. You just wait and see, she will try her best to sow discord between us and Lady Qin.
Madam Bai had expected this to happen, but Madam An had always been cautious and meticulous. Especially at this time, if she wanted to take revenge, she had to hide herself for the longest time.
Mother, some people seem to be overconfident and have forgotten what time it is. Unusual times call for unusual things. I hope she hasnt forgotten this saying.
Bai Shijiaoughed coldly, a sharp iciness that did not belong to someone of her age already appearing in her eyes.
A natural disaster had changed many things. Her father and brother had fallen one after another, which was the fundamental reason that had forced her to grow up quickly.
Gu Ying stopped the carriage at the ce where he found Bai Shiyuan. MO Ruyue summoned two giant wolves and ced them around the carriage to guard it.
The horse pulling the carriage was so frightened by the strong smell of the wolf that its legs went weak and it did not dare to run away.
Just in case, MO Ruyue switched out the two big ck horses and tied the original horse to the back of the carriage.
In this way, even if they were still frightened by the wolf in the end, they were not as strong as the big ck horse and could not drag the carriage away at all.
After making the preparations, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying both entered the space.
After adjusting the timest time, MO Ruyue didnt reset it. So when they entered, it was daytime outside, but it was alreadyte at night when they returned to the space.
Gu Ying nced at MO Ruyue without saying anything and didnt expose her thoughts.
When a person is at a dead end, the more you try to pull, the deeper he will hide.
He would never force MO Ruyue to make a choice because no matter what she chose, even if it was wrong, he would follow her to the end without hesitation.
The two of them entered theboratory together. This time, when the strain was ced on the jade te on the experiment table, and when Gu Ying took out another jade bead, a magical scene happened.
The originally fresh bacteria strains began to wither at a visible rate, and the originally clear beads also began to have a wisp of substance.
Look, Ying. This bead can affect the growth of the bacteria, but it can only wither it. This is a good thing, but what should we do to a patient who has already eaten it by mistake? Do we have to roll the bead in his stomach?
Although MO Ruyue seemed to be self-deprecating, in the next second, she really let Gu Ying walk to Bai Shiyuan with the bead.
The bead rolled around Bai Shiyuans stomach, and a thunderous sound was heard from his stomach.
No way!
The two of them looked at each other and took a few steps back almost at the same time.
So youre saying that this kind of huge crisis needs you and me to manually operate it?
After a long while, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying cleaned up the scene together.
Bai Shiyuan had long been washed and stripped clean, and had changed into a set of clean clothes.
Theboratory had also undergone three rounds of disinfection, but MO Ruyue still felt that there was a faint stench lingering in the air.
Dont tell the young master about this. Theres nothing much to say anyway.
Although MO Ruyue was facing a huge crisis, she had a way to solve itpletely. It was just that this method made her feel that everything seemed to be a huge irony, or like a prank by someone.
Bing Er, as long as this matter can be solved, thats all that matters. As for how far you can go, we havent done it yet, so who knows?
As usual, Gu Ying yed the role of a caring big brother, which made MO Ruyue burst outughing.
Ying, why do I feel that youre less of an assassin than I am? Youre more suitable for the role of a psychiatrist.
If you need it, I can do it too..
Chapter 381 - 381: More And More Disaster Victims
Chapter 381: More And More Disaster Victims
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gu Ying wasnt lying. In fact, if one wanted to sit at the top of the assassin circle, they would need many years to not be pulled down by neers. It was necessary to be an all-rounder.
It was just that he and MO Ruyue each had their own specialties, but that didnt mean that they only had these few skills.
Well talk about itter. At least for now, I dont want to share you with others. MO Ruyue said unconsciously.
Then, when do you want to share me with others?
A low voice came from behind. By the time MO Ruyue realized that something was wrong, she was already deep in the arms of Gu Ying.
He hugged her tightly from behind, his strength so strong that it was as if he wanted to sink her into his bones and blood.
This was the first time she had seen him so excited since their reunion.
No, I dont want to share you with others either.
MO Ruyuehad originally thought that she would never be able to say such words in her life. She didnt expect that she would say it so naturally.
Then dont talk about sharing me with others. I dont like to hear it.
The burning breath blew into her ears, and every word that fell was like a feather dancing in her heart.
Alright, Gu Ying, I was wrong. MO Ruyue said softly.
She had only ever shown this side of her to Gu Ying, and this was a secret that both of them knew.
Bai Shiyuan is fine now. If other people go through the same treatment process, I dont want you to be by my side next time.
Gu Ying suddenly made a request, and his expression was extremely serious.
Oh? But Im a doctor, and a doctor has the heart of a parent. If I treat the patient as my own child, there shouldnt be any problems.
MO Ruyue clearly knew what he meant, but deliberately twisted it. When she saw Gu Yings eyes narrow slightly and reveal a dangerous light, she immediately changed her words.
Alright, that stinky thing doesnt suit me anyway. But Gu Ying, Im afraid youre going to be stinky a lot more in the future.
She was originally gloating, but when she thought about how Gu Ying was always by her side, she immediately stoppedughing.
Then help me develop a high-efficiency perfume. Otherwise, Im afraid youll still be hurt in the end.
Gu Yings words had a double meaning, so MO Ruyue didnt have any advantage and could only bitterly make perfume.
She had asked Madam Bai for two days time, and now that they had found the key to solving the strain problem, the remaining time was more than enough to develop a high-efficiency odor removal agent.
Gu Ying looked at MO Ruyue, who was immersed in the experiment, and a smile appeared on his lips. He then walked to her side and joined her in the research.
It only took two hours for a mild-smelling disinfectant to be born. With just a light spray, the odor in the entireboratory seemed to have been refreshed, and it became extraordinarily fresh and pleasant.
This experiment also came with another surprise. When the two of them were doing the experiment, they identally dropped a medicine into the experimental solution, and the originally rich solution instantly became clear and transparent.
Weve even developed a strong detergent? MO Ruyue was speechless.
Its not just that.
As Gu Ying spoke, he took out a tube, dipped it in the clear solution, and wrote on the paper.
I know. Next, use the fire to heat it and the words will appear.
MO Ruyue recalled that when she asionally watched dramas, she had seen such a scene in a historical drama.
Gu Ying had indeed used a fire-lighter, but when he moved the fire-lighter away, the temperature of the paper dropped, and the words that had appeared disappeared again.
The temperature is the only factor that affects the color. After the temperature drops, it will automatically return to normal. This should be something that other imaging agents dont have.
GuYing handed the piece of paper to Mo Ruyue.
This belongs to you. Only you can see it.
After confirming the beads wondrous effect, MO Ruyue cooperated and made an antidote.
When Gu Ying encountered people who mistakenly ate the strain and were poisoned, he just had to hold the bead in his arms and approach the patient, cooperate with a set of acupuncture to rx the meridians, and then prescribe this medicine to him, which could achieve the effect of deceiving people very well.
Even if there were other doctors who had stolen the medicine to study it, they could only analyze that the medicine could indeed detoxify hundreds of poisons. Without the corresponding acupuncture, it could not achieve the effect of aplete detoxification.
This way, he wouldnt have to worry about someone copying the form but not being able to save the person. This was to prevent any trouble for Gu Ying.
After everything was prepared, the two of them immediately brought Bai
Shiyuan back to the Bai familys campsite.
Lady Qin, have you found the antidote?
Madam Bai looked at MO Ruyue in surprise, and then at Bai Shiyuan, who was being carried down from the carriage. His expression was clearly much better, and the faintyer of grey qi had disappeared.
Yes, the external injuries are easy to treat. The main thing is that he identally ate a poisonous strain, so he fell into aa. Now, Ive already detoxified him. As for the other external injuries, theyve also been treated.
Next, Ying will detoxify the other guards. To detoxify the poison, its best to prepare a few buckets or containers for the unconscious patients.
After MO Ruyue said this, Madam Bai immediately understood how to detoxify the poison.
Go, prepare everything ording to Lady Qins instructions.
The maidservant was standing behind her and immediately went to prepare.
Madam Bai, now that Master Bais condition has stabilized and the young masters poison has been cured, I suggest that you continue to head north.
There will be more refugees from the southing over. If you just sleep in the wild like this, even if you have a certain amount of guards, you wont be able to stop so many people. It wont be good for the father and sons recovery.
I will. Is Lady Qin preparing to continue on her way?
Although Madam Bai had heard MO Ruyue say this before, she was still very reluctant when it was time to part again.
No matter what, when MO Ruyue was around, she had an indescribable sense of security that other doctors could not give.
Yes, weve been here for a few days. The most important rescue time has passed. We dont know whats going on in the south. We should hurry back and take a look.
MO Ruyue wanted to go back to the Qin Vige. If that ce was still there, she could go to the Treasure Valley to take a look.
She had a feeling that that ce was probably no longer there. Otherwise, that senior would not have let them take away all the wolves and herbs.
Then wed better spare a carriage for you and Young Master Ying. In case you need it, you cant find it in the disaster-stricken area.
Madam Bars suggestion was finally epted.
MO Ruyue thought that she would always encounter some inconvenient time to enter and exit the space as she saved people along the way. It couldnt be better to have a carriage as cover.
Gu Ying quickly detoxified the poison of the unconscious guards, and after they were cleaned up by the servants, he also treated their external injuries.
Fortunately, including Bai Shiyuan, everyones external injuries were not particrly serious. They would be fine after a period of rest.
The next day, before dawn, MO Ruyue bade farewell to the mother and daughter of the Bai family, and Gu Ying drove the carriage to the next town.
When she left the county town, she had been traveling day and night with her babies. It could almost be said that she had been running for three days and three nights. Now, she had to save people on the way back) so her speed had slowed down by dozens of times.
The further south they went, the more tragic scenes they saw. There were also more and more disaster victims on the road.
Even if they saw someone heading south, it would not attract their attention. Numb and despairing expressions appeared on their faces, as well as unquenched fear.
No one cared about MO Ruyues purpose in going south. Everyone was worried about how they were going to sneak past today..
Chapter 382 - 382: They Are All Martial Artists
Chapter 382: They Are All Martial Artists
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gu Ying, the real purgatory is further south.
MO Ruyue looked into the distance. He couldnt imagine what it would be like in the county.
No matter what, you and I will do our best.
Gu Ying seemed to be driving the carriage leisurely, but in fact, he was secretly on high alert to prevent the disaster victims from doing anything extreme.
Although the two of them were dressed in simple and low-key clothes, this carriage was already eye-catching enough, not to mention that there were two extremely handsome horses tied to the back of the carriage. It was difficult to guarantee that no one would take the risk because of this.
MO Ruyue had also anticipated that such a situation might happen, so she would observe the situation outside through the window gap from time to time so that she could respond as quickly as possible.
At this time, the main road had been upied by refugees heading north. Gu Ying had no choice but to slow down, like a small boat going against the current.
Young Master, do a good deed and give us some food!
A woman in ragged clothes suddenly fell on the shaft of the carriage, reaching out to Gu Ying for food.
Her cries also attracted the attention of the other refugees, who all looked at the carriage that was going against the flow.
With someone taking the lead, the others followed.
More and more refugees swarmed over and surrounded the carriage.
Do a good deed and give me some food!
A chip, no, a piece of cornbread is fine too, I beg you!
I can give you some money! Were going to starve to death, we can buy a meal with a single wen.
I dont have food, and I dont have money, Gu Ying said briefly.
He knew very well that once he gave food to the first woman, things would go out of control.
Youre talking nonsense! You can afford four horses and two such good precious horses, how can you not have money?
Thats right. How can you be so selfish? Are you going to watch us starve to death?
Fellow vigers, he doesnt have money, so lees take the horse and sell it! Even if I eat meat, itll fill my stomach for a few meals!
Among the usations, someone began to incite the refugees to rob. This sentence was like a spark, instantly igniting the evil in the hearts of the refugees.
Why were they suffering from hunger and cold while this man could eat his fill and wear warm clothes while sitting in a carriage and swaggering through the city with four horses?
He was not even willing to give them any money or food to help them, so dont me them for taking action!
Some of them reached out to grab Gu Yings reins, while others aimed directly at the two big ck horses behind them.
Gu Ying didnt move. He only whipped the horse a few times, and everyone who tried to grab the reins was hit hard in the hand. They screamed and retreated, but were pushed back by the people who rushed forward behind.
The carriage door also opened in an instant. MO Ruyue seemed to have floated out. She put her hand on Gu Yings shoulder and did a 180-degree spin kick, sending the few people in the lead flying and crashing into the ground.
At the same time, the neighing of the ck horse and the screams of people came from behind the car. It was obvious that they had a bad temper, and some people had also suffered because of it.
After MO Ruyue kicked the man away, he used Gu Yings strength to flip over the top of the carriage, directly passing through the carriage andnding on the back of a big ck horse.
There were already people who had been injured by the horses hooves. They vomited blood and fell to the ground. It seemed that they would not survive.
The others were frightened and stepped back one after another, leaving an open space.
MO Ruyue sat on her horse, her pretty face filled with fierceness. Her eyes coldly swept over the crowd.
If you cant get what you want, youll just snatch it? You deserve to die!
Her words provoked the refugees again. An older man stood up and said angrily, We just wanted to ask for some money and food, but you directly rode your horse to hurt people. Now that youve taken someone life, youre actually saying such vicious words?
Such a vicious woman, arent you afraid of retribution?
Whats my rtionship with you? Do I have to give it to you just because you beg me?
I didnt cause your disaster, not to mention that there are so many of you. Can I save all of you? MO Ruyue asked coldly. Its money and food. Who should I give it to and who shouldnt I give it to?
Her words made some people lower their heads with guilt on their faces, but more people still held their heads high and looked at MO Ruyue angrily as if she had no right to criticize them.
Well help as much as we can, and well appreciate it. But now that someones died, are you going to pretend that nothing happened and just run away?
The leading man didnt seem to have any sense of guilt. Instead, he confronted MO Ruyue even more intensely.
He was kicked to death while stealing a horse. He deserved it.
MO Ruyue really didnt want to talk nonsense with this group of people. She got off the horse, untied the reins of both horses, and mounted the horse again. Then she knocked on the carriage.
Gu Ying, lets go!
Dont even think of leaving without an exnation!
It was that man again who took the lead and directly blocked MO Ruyues horse. At the same time, he shouted to the refugees in front, Their horse kicked someone to death, we cant just let it go!
Although the person who snatched the reins in front had been whipped and kicked by MO Ruyue, he still didnt give up.
They relied on their numbers and supported each other to block the carriage. It seems like you wont shed a tear until you see your coffins.
MO Ruyue nced around and saw that the people standing in front of them were almost all strong men. Instead, some of the old, weak, women, and
children were pushed to the back.
Many of them wanted to take advantage of the situation. Even if they couldnt get the horse, they could get some money or even sell the woman.
However, what they didnt expect was that the man and woman they met were actually martial artists.
Now that they heard the womans harsh words and thought of her swift movements just now, a few of the faster ones had already quietly retreated.
However, some people had already lost their minds. They only wanted to get some benefits, but they still refused to let go.
Cut the crap. If you dont give us an exnation after killing him, we wont agree!
MO Ruyue nodded. This time, she really didnt talk nonsense and directly attacked.
Before the man in the lead could finish his sentence, a green figure had already arrived in front of him. The next second, his feet left the ground and he was easily picked up by one hand and thrown away.
The other people in front of the horses were the same. They were thrown out by the neck before they could even see the figure clearly.
Gu Yings actions were exactly the same as MO Ruyues, and even the timing of their actions was the same.
However, there were a few more people blocking the carriage in front of her, and it was a few seconds before she stopped.
All the refugees who saw this scene fell silent. Only now did they Imow what kind of person they had provoked.
Looking at their skills, the two of them had taken down more than a dozen people in an instant, and it had been effortless.
This meant that even if everyone rushed forward, they would only be serving food and would not be of any help.
Who else is there? Come at me together. Dont waste time.
MO Ruyue looked around the crowd again. If she couldnt speak, she would open a path with her fists. No one would not understand thisnguage.
Seeing the people on the ground, no one dared to step forward to stop them, and they quickly made way for them.
Gu Ying once again drove the carriage towards the south. MO Ruyue once again mounted her horse, but she was not in a hurry to follow. Instead, she looked at the old, weak, women, and children standing in the distance.
Even if she had food, she couldnt share it with them. It would only harm them.
She expressionlessly turned her gaze and directly chased after Gu Ying. After a few hundred meters, the group of refugees could no longer be seen..
Chapter 383 - 383: Ruins
Chapter 383: Ruins
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ying, were too big a target now. Put away the carriage and the ck horse. Lets ride the horse thats pulling the carriage.
This way, even if they were to encounter refugees blocking their way again, their mobility would be stronger, and they would not waste time.
Ill do as you say.
Gu Ying didnt have any objections.
Taking advantage of the fact that there was no one in front and behind, MO Ruyue put away the carriage and the ck horse, and switched to the two brown horses that pulled the carriage.
The horses that the Bai family provided were also better than ordinary horses, so the speed of the two people did not slow down at all.
When it was close to evening, the two finally saw another city. However, this time, the city had no ess control because half of the city wall had copsed. They could even see that most of the buildings in the city had also copsed.
Ill go take a look. Maybe we can bypass this city.
As Gu Ying spoke, he urged his horse forward toward the city. MO Ruyue was walking around the city, observing the surrounding environment.
An hourter, GuYing returned with some bad news.
Theres almost no one left in the city. When the natural disaster urred, half of them fled, and many were directly crushed under the copsed houses. We dont know if theyre alive or dead.
There are still some people left in the city. They are all seriously injured and on the verge of death, or they cant move very far. They are the old, weak, women, and children who are still waiting for someone to save them.
Then lets go into the city and take a look. Theres bound to be a major epidemic after a great disaster. Even if they survive now, they wont be able to escape the subsequent epidemic if they stay in a ce full of corpses.
Although the temperature in the north is getting warmer slowly, its still rising. They dont have much time left.
MO Ruyue thought of the old, weak, women, and children who had no choice but to give up, and then thought of the babies who were safely in the medium, and her heart softened.
They hade back to save people. If there were still people alive in the city below, there should be a hope of being saved.
However, before she went back, MO Ruyue entered the space again.
She needed to bring arge amount of food, medicine, and warm clothes, which were useful for the people waiting for help.
Gu Ying had investigated very clearly. There were not many strong men left in the city. Almost all of them had escaped, and the remaining ones did not want to leave their families.
What she needed to do was to fill up the carriage and then enter the city as fast as possible to save the people.
The living Buddha is here, were saved!
The city, which had been deathly silent, was disturbed by a burst of crying, and gradually regained some vitality.
Lanterns were hung on both sides of MO Ruyues carriage. The warm orange light symbolized the hope of life and was summoning the surviving lives to her.
Dont rush, dont fight.
MO Ruyue had already returned to the medium to prepare a lot of dry food. She steamed tray after tray of steamed buns and cakes. There was no porridge. After all, her carriage had a limited capacity and she could not conjure more things.
While maintaining order, she distributed food to the injured who could still move and moved over to her.
This way, everyone would be gathered together, and it would be more convenient for her to treat their injuries.
Perhaps it was because the people in the city were too scattered, there were not many people gathered here now. There were only a dozen people, most of whom were elderly and children, and only two or three men.
Can you find any more living people? We wont be staying here for too long, so if anyone needs food or treatment, I hope you can help each other to find it.
As MO Ruyue spoke, she quickly treated the injured in his hands.
Most of them were smashed or scalded, and some had a high fever because of shock. To MO Ruyue, it was not a difficult injury to deal with.
Those who were seriously injured would find it difficult to even move, let alone gather here.
Bodhisattva, please save my mother and brother! Theyve been locked up in the room for a few days!
An eight or nine-year-old boy suddenly appeared out of nowhere and knelt down in front of MO Ruyue. He didnt even look at the steamed bun that was stuffed into her hand and just kept kowtowing and crying to her.
His age was simr to Er Baos, but their current situation was like heaven and hell.
Not to mention his bloodied face and ragged clothes, just the despair in his eyes was enough to make ones heart clench.
I can help you take a look, but I cant guarantee that I can save them. As you can see, there are only two of us, and we still have to help the other people.
Although MO Ruyue sympathized with him, she still let her rationality take over.
She wouldnt make a promise out of sympathy, no matter who it was to.
Thank you, thank you! The little boy thanked her excitedly.
Hurry and eat something.
An aunt at the side forced a steamed bun into his hands, but he still looked at MO Ruyue eagerly, afraid to miss every look in her eyes.
Wheres your house?
MO Ruyue quickly finished bandaging thest patient and called the little boy over to ask.
Its in a courtyard in the north of the city. However, the surrounding houses have all copsed, so the carriage cant enter. The little boy said hesitantly. This carriage and the horse that pulled it were worth a lot of silver. Although there were not many people left in the city, it was hard to guarantee that there would not be people who would take advantage of the situation.
MO Ruyue noticed his hesitation and asked, but she didnt expect him to also honestly speak his mind.
Dont worry, just lead the way,
Of course, she wouldnt leave the carriage alone when she went to save the people.
Under the little boys lead, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying came to a pile of ruins.
From the remnants of the pirs and walls, it could be seen that this was once a residential area. However, not only was there no rtivelyplete house, but there was also no passage for people to enter and exit.
Some of the buildings that looked like they were about to copse were severely nted, as if they would copse at the slightest touch.
MO Ruyue observed carefully and confirmed that only the boys body size could pass through the gaps between the buildings smoothly.
But even so, it was hard to say if he would be buried when he returned.
She directly reached out to hold the little boys waist and carried him up. After a few leaps, they reached the roof of a nearby building, and the view suddenly widened.
Tell me, where should I go?
Looking down at the entire residential area from above, even with the help of the moonlight, they could only see a vague outline.
Go that way, east, about 100 meters to the right. Theres a broken old locust tree there. 15 steps to the right, thats my gate.
The little boy didnt show any panic, but after carefully determining the direction, he immediately gave an answer.
Not only did he know the route home by heart, but what was even more valuable was that he could describe the route clearly and urately.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but take another look at the little boy.
Other than the time when he cried for her help, he still looked like a child. Now, he looked like a mature adult.
Bing Er, Ill go alone, you guys wait for me here.
Gu Ying carried a rope on his back and a modified jack in his hand. Since he was going to save people from the copsed house, these things were essential.
Fortunately, there werent any skyscrapers that were more than ten stories tall, so the difficulty of the rescue was also reduced..
Chapter 384 - 384: The Woman’s Corpse
Chapter 384: The Womans Corpse
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ill go with you. Well be faster with the two of us.
MO Ruyues finger knocked on the carriage, and a low groan came from inside.
She had already released two giant wolves from her space when the little boy wasnt paying attention. They had settled in the carriage.
If someone had the intention to steal the carriage, they would definitely receive an unexpected surprise.
Gu Ying would never go against MO Ruyues words. With a tap of his toes, he was already like an owl spreading its wings, silently sliding into the night.
MO Ruyue followed closely behind. She could feel the little boys excited and surprised gaze moving between her and Gu Ying. He didnt even notice that his face had been frozen by the night wind.
After listening to the little boys route, the two of them had already found anding point to reach their destination. After a few jumps, the two of them stood on the trunk of an old locust tree.
The houses here havepletely copsed. If theres really someone still inside, theres almost no chance of survival.
Gu Ying only needed to take a look to roughly make a judgment.
These buildings were all built with stone. Generally, only people in the countryside would choose this kind of heavy stone, and even the wood was very little.
Once a house like this copsed, the people inside would not be able to survive unless they ran fast.
Uncle, my mother and brother must still be alive. I can always hear their voices. Theyre crying for help and it hurts!
The little boy mistakenly thought that Gu Ying was trying to persuade MO Ruyue to give up on saving him, and immediately started to plead again.
If these two good-hearted people left, he would really have no way to save his mother and brother.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying exchanged a look and finally said to him, Your brother is still here, but Your mother is gone.
No, thats impossible. My mother said that she would definitely wait for me to bring people back to save her!
The little boy was stunned for a moment, and then he shook his head vigorously.
There were tears in her eyes, but he tried his best not to let them fall.
He had just spoken to his mother before he left, and he had rushed back not long ago. How could his mother be gone?
You just wait here. We dont need your help, as long as you dont hurt yourself.
MO Ruyue didnt give him time to adapt to this cruel news. Even if the younger child was alive, his breath was already very weak. If she dyed any longer, he would die.
She gave a hasty order and immediately rushed in the direction of the sound with Gu Ying.
The two of them nimblynded on a pile of rocks. They were not in a hurry to dig, but instead quickly observed the surroundings.
Although the stones were stacked together, they were blocked by a fallen wooden beam, forming a narrow space.
It could be said that it was thanks to this small space that the mother and son could persist until today.
What they had to do now was to find a support point and slowly move the stones away to prevent the stones from falling and eventually causing secondary harm to the mother and son.
Its a pity that this isnt my space. Otherwise, with a thought transfer, these wouldnt be a problem.
MO Ruyue sighed. She didnt dare to think that if it was any one of her babies under here, would she still be able to keep her calm and even think about some unrealistic things?
Bing Er, look, that beam hit the millstone outside, thats why theres a small triangr area. If thats the case, the mother and son should have been standing under the roof.
Gu Ying analyzed as he tried to touch the stacked stones.
This side must have been swept by the tail of the meteorite, which caused such huge damage. Also, look, the fallen wall is facing to one side. Thats why the beam that should have been inside the house hit the millstone outside. So, the meteorite came from behind them, and the mother and son wanted to run but didnt?
MO Ruyue followed Gu Yings groping direction and probed downwards. They often yed this kind of game of looking for support points to maintain bnce, and their cooperation was particrly tacit.
First, he carefully cleaned up the loose gravel, then the rtively loose ones, and finally the rtively stable big stones. This required the modified jack that Gu Ying brought.
In fact, the two of them had far more strength than ordinary people, and it was not a problem for them to lift things that weighed a few hundred pounds.
However, they still had to free up their hands to save people, so it was better to leave the supporting stone to professional tools.
In the process of clearing the rocks, MO Ruyue turned her head to look in the direction of the old locust tree. The little boy was still standing obediently on the trunk.
Obedient children were still very rare.
This thought suddenly shed through her mind, and then she heard Gu Ying say, Bing Er, I found that womans body.
Although only a small part of the cloth was revealed, it was obvious that it was the coarse blue linen that themon people were used to wearing.
Although the mother was caught off guard and hit, she still used her body to protect her child.
MO Ruyues hearing was extraordinary, especially at such a close distance. They could easily tell who was still alive among the rubble.
As the rocks were cleared out more quickly, the body of a young woman was slowly revealed.
Although her body was already cold, her joints were notpletely stiff. However, many of her bones had been shattered, and they felt soft to the touch.
Even if she wasnt dead yet, she wouldnt be able to live for long after being rescued.
MO Ruyue could feel that her spine was broken several times. She was basically suffering from high paraplegia.
Moreover, in the process of rescue and moving, it would also cause her bones to shift, directly pressing on the nerves and bone marrow inside. It could be said that the moment the stone moved, she would be dead.
Both of them were people who were used to seeing life and death, but even so, seeing that the hope of life was so close, but both of their feet had already entered the gates of hell, the ending was still somewhat unbearable.
They didnt speak again, but silently dug out the young womans body. In the end, they saw how she did her best to protect her child.
Although she was hit from behind, the young woman still struggled to use her knees, back, and arms to protect the child in her arms.
Using her body as a cushion, she firmly withstood the various kinds of pressure that were pressing down from above, including the beam that hit the millstone.
She persevered like this until she took herst breath.
She was holding a little boy about three years old in her arms, sucking on something. After the pressure around her suddenly disappeared, she seemed to have fallen asleep.
In order to keep her child alive, the woman, who had lost her milk, actually secreted blood and milk from her breast. This was the biggest reason why the three-year-old boy could survive.
MO Ruyue was moved by the scene in front of her.
She had heard countless times that motherly love was the greatest feeling in the world. Even after she had a few sensible and lovely babies, she was still a little unfamiliar with this kind of feeling.
But now, in front of such an ordinary woman, her greatness made MO Ruyue feel a sense of inferiority.
This must be true motherly love. Inparison, what she had done for her babies was nothing.
Gu Ying, go and bring that little boy here. He shouldnt miss this scene.
Instead, he should remember that he was once loved by such a great mother..
Chapter 385 - 385: The Poor Child
Chapter 385: The Poor Child
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyues gaze couldnt move away from that woman. She never thought she would see this scene.
The strong shock made her speechless, and it took her a long time toe back to her senses.
Gu Ying went over and said something to the little boy, and a desperate cry made MO Ruyues nose sour.
Was this the feeling of sadness?
She thought that she would never have the chance to experience it in her life.
Very quickly, Gu Yings figure flew over with the little boy in his arms. The little fellow who was still sobbing and crying instantly quieted down.
He looked at the scene in front of him in a daze. It was such a cruel and desperate scene, but there was still a glimmer of hope in front of him. One could imagine the impact it had on him.
Mother, Ive brought someone back. Look, Ive even brought a steamed bun. The little boy suddenly knelt down and handed over the untouched steamed bun in his hand.
Younger Brother has long been weaned off milk, so why is he drinking it again today? Mother, you eat steamed buns while it is still warm.
When he saw that his mother and brother were ignoring him, he took the initiative to break a piece and put it in the young womans mouth. His hand loosened, and the steamed bun fell to the ground.
MO Ruyue stood at the side and watched. Neither he nor Gu Ying said anything.
The little boy slowly picked up the steamed bun that had fallen on the ground, tore off the dirty skin, and brought it to the young womans mouth again.
Her cold lips touched his fingers. As if they were frozen, his hands trembled. Mother, youre feeding Little Brother, but if you dont eat You cant go without food. Even if were on the road, we have to be full before we have the strength.
His voice gradually sounded like he was about to cry, and bean-sized tears began to fall from his eyes.
No matter how much he tried to stuff the steamed bun into the young womans mouth, he couldnt pry open her stiff mouth. He could only kneel and move a few steps forward. With both hands, he finally put the piece of steamed bun in.
Benefactor, I beg you to save my mother.
The little boy suddenly turned around and fiercely kowtowed to MO Ruyue. He didnt care about the debris and stones on the ground that had already cut his hands and knees into pieces.
MO Ruyues reaction was extremely fast. The moment his forehead was about to hit the stone, she picked him up.
Ill pay for this first. If you die here, wouldnt it be unfair? Are you going to leave your little brother to me?
She deliberately said it in a very impolite way.
The little boy looked like he had lost all hope. If she showed any sympathy for them, he might really leave his brother behind.
No, my brother was exchanged for my mothers life. I will never leave him!
Although the little boy was being held in the air, he did not look flustered at all. On the contrary, his eyes revealed an extremely firm expression, and his words were even more resolute.
This was more like it.
MO Ruyue quite admired his tenacity.
At such a young age, he had experienced such a drastic change and witnessed his mothers tragic death in front of him. Yet, he was still able to remain rational and calm. He would definitely be a rare figure in the future.
Although she had a high opinion of him, he was still too young, and there were too many variables in the future.
Even without such a natural disaster, it would be a difficult problem for an eight or nine-year-old child to raise a three-year-old brother to survive, let alone in this situation.
MO Ruyue didnt continue to think about it. It wasnt convenient for Gu Ying to participate in the following matters. After all, the young woman was currently naked. Even if it was just the corpse, it wasnt appropriate.
She quickly cleaned up the remaining stones and the beam that was pressing on it, and moved the body of the young woman out.
In order to keep the body from stiffening, MO Ruyue had even used silver needles to stimte the acupoints to maintain the flexibility of the joints. So even though the young woman had passed away for a long time, her limbs were still soft when she was dug out.
She quickly pulled up the young womanspels and used a handkerchief to clean the dust and sand on her face. Atst, she managed to preserve thest bit of dignity of the deceased.
The little boy carefully held his sleeping brother in his arms. His tears had stopped when his mother was dug out, but his eyes were red and swollen as he watched MO Ruyue restrain his mother.
There was no ce to look for coffins in the face of natural disasters, but this was not a problem for the omnipotent Gu Ying.
He had only left for a short while before returning with a huge coffin.
Ying, you went to the mortuary to rob?
MO Ruyue lifted the lid of the coffin and saw the white cloth used to wrap the corpse, the white candle, the yellow paper, and even the linen mourning belt and a pair of spiritual puppets.
Yes, I just walked around and saw that I could use them, so I brought them all.
MO Ruyue didnt think that her casual question would actually get the right answer. This was probably Gu Yings style and something he would do.
The little boy didnt expect to be able to collect his mothers body. He was so excited that he wanted to kneel down and kowtow again.
Stand up straight! Youre a man and you kneel at every turn. Are your knees that soft?
MO Ruyue was the most impatient to see people kneel. Even if they were given a second chance at life, they just had to find a way to repay the favor. Kneeling to the heavens, kneeling to the earth, and kneeling to their parents was not something that anyone could ept.
The little boy immediately stood up straight when he heard that.
He swore in his heart that even though he couldnt do anything now, he would definitely repay the favor in the future. Even if he had to die, he wouldnt hesitate!
The carriage left and returned. The injured people who had been waiting at the settlement heard the sound of the wheels and looked over.
They saw that the carriage was dragging a cart with a huge coffin on it. They then saw the little boy walking beside the cart with a sorrowful face and immediately understood.
Sigh. What a poor child. He lost his mother just like that, and I dont know where his father went. The older one is taking care of the younger one. How is he going to live in the future?
Even if his mother was still alive, is it easy for a woman to raise two children?
This mother is free, leaving behind two children, its really a sin!
Shush, lower your voice. We dont have the time to sympathize with others now. We dont even know if we can survive!
All the discussions were like a thorn in the little boys heart.
He looked expressionlessly at his sleeping brother in his arms. Even if he had to cut his flesh and drain his blood every day to feed his brother, he would do it without hesitation!
As for asking for help from his two benefactors, he did not dare to have such a thought again.
His benefactor had already helped him a lot, and he should learn to be content with what he had. This was what his mother had taught him again and again when she was still alive.
No matter how difficult it was, he would still slip through.
Gu Ying drove the carriage to a barren mountain outside the city. Now that the entire city was almost destroyed, there were naturally no guards or ess controls.
In order to prevent the hungry refugees from digging up the desecrated corpses, Gu Ying had even walked up the mountain for a long time.
Even though it was pitch-ck around him, he was still able to use the starry sky to determine his direction and found a rtively open and t area.
This ce faced the south, and it was considered a good burial ground.
While they were digging, the little boy also worked with them. He waved his heavy pickaxe or used a dustpan to push the soil out of the pit.
His hands were blistered with blood, but he did not cry out in pain.
Soon, a new grave was erected.
It read, the tomb of the first cilin, the Liu family.
The unfilial sons, Lin Zheng and Lin Yun, stood in respect with tears in their eyes.
In the end, MO Ruyue didnt know the real name of the young woman, but she knew the names of this pair of little brothers..
Chapter 386 - 386: I Didn’t Come Here In Vain
Chapter 386: I Didnt Come Here In Vain
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
What do you n to do in the future? She said to the little boy who was kneeling in front of the tombstone and burning joss paper.
Benefactor, I n to take my brother to the north. Whether its begging or selling myself as a ve, Ill try my best to survive with him.
He didnt open his mouth to ask for help, which was out of MO Ruyues expectations.
How about this, Ill give you something. If you meet a family with this badge in the north, just say that I asked you to go there.
MO Ruyue quickly wrote a note and stamped it with her seal.
She rummaged through the carriage and quickly came back with a package.
Ive prepared some dry food and clothes for you. There are only a few copper coins. Dont use them unless you have no other choice.
MO Ruyue had already thought of everything.
Giving money to children of this age would be sending them to a dead end. It was better to give them enough clothes to keep them warm and dry food to fill their stomachs.
She was prepared to entrust the two children to the Bai family, but whether or not they could catch up to the Bai family depended on whether these two little brothers had the fortune to survive this disaster.
Benefactor, even if you dont want me to kneel, I still want to kneel. Please let me kowtow to you!
The little boy couldnt hold it in any longer. He didnt know what else he could say to express his gratitude. Even if it would make his benefactor unhappy, he must kowtow to thank her.
You still owe me one just now, so you can pay me back in one.
MO Ruyue only hated people who knelt and begged, but she would naturally ept this kind of heartfelt gratitude.
Lin Zheng carefully put his brother to the side and immediately knelt down. He respectfully kowtowed three times to MO Ruyue and Gu Ying, making banging sounds.
When he raised his head, his forehead was already bruised.
Alright, how you want to walk the road after this and how far you can go will depend on you.
MO Ruyue helped Lin Zheng up, sighing in her heart.
This was a rare good seedling. If it were another situation, perhaps she would have brought him by her side to cultivate, but the timing was not right.
She still had her babies in her interspace, and she would have to bring them out sooner orter. She couldnt keep them trapped in her interspace.
With so many people appearing out of thin air, Lin Zheng would definitely be suspicious. Even if he was indebted to her, this secret could not be easilv known by others.
Therefore, she could only allow Lin Zheng to find his own way out. If he could catch up to the Bai family, they would definitely meet again in the future. At that time, it would not be toote to ept him as a disciple.
If he still fell on the road of fighting for his life, then it could only be said that they were not fated to be together.
This wasnt because MO Ruyue was cruel. She and Gu Ying had once walked an even more dangerous path to reach where they were today. Inparison, the path that Lin Zheng was going to take now was really nothing.
Initially, she had thought that Lin Zheng would stay on the mountain to apany his mother for a while longer. She did not expect that he would choose to go down the mountain with them without hesitation.
Benefactor, I can save more energy by following your carriage for a longer journey. You wont me me for being opportunistic, right?
Lin Zheng faced MO Ruyues question and said frankly.
No, you just know how to judge the situation and make the best choice,
MO Ruyue knew very well that it wasnt that this child didnt value rtionships. On the contrary, it was because he valued rtionships too much that he valued his younger brother, who his mother had exchanged her life for, more than anything else.
He knew that Lin Yun could only rely on him now, so he couldnt fall. There was still a long way to go, and he had to make the right choice.
The time to part had finallye. MO Ruyue gave Lin Zheng a lit torch and two spare ones.
He even had a machete stuck on his waist.
The night was long, and although there was no threat from humans, the wild beasts that had gone crazy from hunger were also a severe test.
Remember, during the day, you must stay away from the crowd.
MO Ruyue reminded them onest time. She had already done her best and had no regrets.
After thanking MO Ruyue and Gu Ying, Lin Zhengs small figure gradually disappeared into the distance. Only the orange me continued to sh as he firmly headed north.
Bing Er, are we going back to the city or are we going down?
Gu Ying saw that she was looking in the direction of Lin Zhengs departure for a long time without saying a word. He knew that she still couldnt let it go, so he deliberately found some topics to divert her attention.
Lets go back to the city. If there are any more injured people, treat them. Also, you have to purify the water source. We didnte in vain.
MO Ruyue retracted her gaze, not wanting Gu Ying to worry about her. Okay, lets enter the city first and then split up.
Gu Ying was about to get on the carriage when two arms suddenly wrapped around his waist. MO Ruyues soft body came close.
Its great to find you.
Ever since they had reunited, she had said these words countless times, but each time, it gave Gu Ying a different feeling.
He patted the back of her hand andforted her, Even if I have to do it a thousand times, I will still find you.
Um!
The two of them continued to confirm each others feelings in this kind ofpanionship, deepening the bond between them, making the thread of their fates tighter and tighter, never to be cut off again.
The carriage entered the city again, but there were some things and people missing. Although it still caused some small discussions, it quickly disappeared without a trace.
The night had fallen, and the wounded, who had been frightened and tortured by pain, quickly fell asleep after having a full meal and receiving treatment.
This settlement was one of the few buildings that had survived. There was even a sign of an inn hanging on it. It could only be said to be a ce that could barely shelter them from the wind and rain, but it could not keep them warm.
MO Ruyue naturally wouldnt help them start a fire to keep them warm. These people could still eat and move. If she had to do it to keep them warm, then they deserved to be left behind to wait for death.
After she returned, she had asked if there were any more peopleing to this gathering point, but the answer was no.
After such a long time, even if there were survivors, they wouldnt be able tost long if they couldnt move.
Right now, it was the middle of winter. Without any food or drink, they were seriously injured, and their body temperatures were dropping. This was a sure-death buff.
MO Ruyue was also very clear about this, but in the second half of the night, she still went with Gu Ying to sort out the entire city from head to toe.
When the sky had just turned bright, the two returned to the ce where they had first parted, but the bags of dry food and medicine in their hands were empty.
The life force of a human was indeed the most incredible thing. That night, they had found no less than a dozen survivors.
However, this was all that was left.
Even if some of them were still breathing weakly, they couldnt hold on for long. Even if they discovered them, they would ignore them.
As for those who still had a glimmer of hope, the two of them left them with dry food and medicine. As for whether they could survive this in the end, it was up to Gods arrangement.
Were going south now. We walked around the city against night and found some survivors, but its not convenient to move them now.
I know you cant even take care of yourselves now, but if you think of your desire for someone to save you, go and take a look if you can. Weve all left a very eye-catching mark. Of course, even if you dont go, no one will say anything..
Chapter 387 - 387: Farewell
Chapter 387: Farewell
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After MO Ruyue finished speaking, her eyes swept over the crowd around her. However, those evasive eyes were destined to disappoint her.
After nearly ten days, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying finally returned to the county.
However, the county no longer existed. The entire city had been hit by a dense number of meteorites, and all the houses had been destroyed in the sea of fire.
The original ruins of the city were only left with craters of various sizes.
As for the mountain range where the Qin Vige was located, two of the mountains had their peaks cut off. The continuous fire had almost destroyed the entire mountain forest. Fortunately, the mountain range had a lot of water, so some trees and vegetation were preserved.
When MO Ruyue saw the county, she could not even say a word. She could only let out a gasp.
She had already mentally prepared herself for the tragedy that she had witnessed along the way. However, when she saw the center of the catastrophe, she could only be d that she had a cheat.
No matter why that senior chose her and Gu Ying. MO Ruyue was already extremely grateful that she could predict such a natural disaster in advance and survive it.
Gu Ying, if I didnt suddenly have that illusion, I might have turned into ashes like the others in this city.
Dont even think about it, Bing Er, you are the one chosen, thats the best reason.
Gu Ying saw this scene and was also deeply shocked. He couldnt help but reach out and pull MO Ruyue into his arms to confirm her existence.
Lady Qin, you are Lady Qin?
A voice came from behind him, filled with disbelief and bewilderment. MO Ruvue turned around and saw a man in razzed clothes with a Dair of crutches. One of his legs had been broken from the base of his thigh to the foot of his other leg. The other foot was also turned outward as if it had grown crooked before it could be restored.
The man looked like he had just escaped from a sea of fire. His face was so ckened that it was impossible to tell what he originally looked like. Half of his face was covered in scars left behind by blisters that had burst from the
And you are?
Even if she had an eidetic memory, she still couldnt tell who he was when faced with such apletely disfigured face.
Its me, Doctor Li from Huichun Hall!
That persons emotions became even more agitated. He was in a hurry to rush to MO Ruyues side, but his walking stick tilted and he fell to the ground.
Doctor Li? Its you!
MO Ruyue immediately went forward to help him up.
Doctor Lis character was good, and he treated the poor and the rich equally. His medical skills were naturally excellent to be able to enter Huichun Hall.
MO Ruyue only nodded to him and was not as close as Imperial Doctor Tian and her little followers.
Originally, she thought that there was no one alive here. She didnt expect that not only was there one, but it was also an acquaintance. However, when she saw this acquaintances unrecognizable appearance, she really didnt know what to say.
Lady Qin, you suddenly left the county before, where did you go? Imperial Doctor Tian and the others have also left together. You, do you know something?
Doctor Li grabbed MO Ruyues arm tightly and reproached her.
Doctor Li, what are you talking about? I left to find a new school for my babies. What can I know?
Of course, MO Ruyue would not admit to Doctor Lis usation. Besides, even if he had doubts in his heart, he had no evidence to prove it.
A new academy? Yes, your babies dont have Du Zhongheng as their teacher, they have a master that is despised by all the students in the world. It will be difficult to find a suitable academy.
Doctor Li seemed to have epted this reason. Although he was still a little skeptical, he couldnt find any more faults.
What happened that day? How did you be like this? Where did the others
This time, it was MO Ruyues turn to ask.
Although she knew what had happened, she had not experienced it personally and did not know what it was like when a natural disaster really came.
That day The sky was on fire that day
Doctor Lis memory was brought back to that day, and the nightmarish scene seemed to y out in front of him again.
Countless fireballs fell from the sky. We didnt even have time to react before many of us were hit. Some were even burned to death in an instant.
I-I was out of the city for a house call when a carriage happened to arrive, so I ran as fast as I could. The cries and screams from the city could even reach my ears.
Thats hell, a living hell!
Even if he didnt go into detail about what happened next, MO Ruyue could roughly guess.
It was nothing more than being hit by rocks or trees from meteorites during the escape and being burned, but in the end, they were lucky enough to escape death and survive.
Doctor Lis answer confirmed her guess, but he didnt know what happened to the others. After all, he was outside the city when the natural disaster urred, so he was lucky enough to escape.
How did you manage to slip away during this time? Did you see anyone else? MO Ruyue continued to ask.
She still had a glimmer of hope that there might be others who would be as lucky as Doctor Li.
Im a doctor, so I bring my medicine box with me when I go out to see patients. There are even medicinal herbs borrowed from Huichun Hall in the car. If it werent for these, I would have died long ago.
As for the others, Ive seen some escapees. Although I asked them to take me with them, they couldnt take care of themselves and left me behind in the end.
Ive only managed to survive to this day by relying on the charred animal corpses in the mountains.
After Doctor Li finished telling her his experience, he fell silent. There was still a lingering fear in his eyes.
MO Ruyue had just moved a little when he grabbed her arm tightly again and said, Lady Qin, youre leaving, right? Please take me with you. If you dont care about me, Ill be dead!
I wont leave for the time being I still have to search for other survivors. In addition, I have to go into the mountains to see what the Qin Vige is like now. Im afraid it wont be convenient.
Although Doctor Lis encounter was very pitiful, MO Ruyue would not take him away just because of this.
There were too many pitiful people. Even if she wanted to save them, she couldnt.
Lady Qin, please do me a favor. Look at my current state, how many more days can I live? Please save me, for the sake of our past work in Huichun Hall! As Doctor Li spoke, he fell to the ground and mmed his head against the ground, wanting to kowtow to MO Ruyue.
How about this, I can send you to the nearest town with people and leave you some money for your own protection. I cant do anything more than that. If you cant ept it, then well part ways here.
MO Ruyue said decisively.
Doctor Li looked at MO Ruyue with his mouth wide open. After a long while, he said dejectedly, Then well do as Lady Qin says.
Doctor Li had unhealed burns all over his body, so it was obviously unrealistic to ride a horse.
Although they were fast enough, the process of running would wear down his wounds again, so in the end, he had to let Gu Ying drive the carriage to send him away.
MO Ruyue was also very kind and gave him some mens clothes, silver, and some special burn treatment medicine.
Lady Qin, I cant repay your great kindness. If theres a next life, I will
definitely.
Chapter 388 - 388: The County Is Gone
Chapter 388: The County Is Gone
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Before Doctor Li could finish his words of gratitude, he was interrupted by MO Ruyue.
Doctor Li, you should hurry up and get in the carriage. Get well first and talk about the futureter.
She knew that there was a small town that had survived fifty miles away, and it had miraculously not encountered any danger. Whether it was meteorites or fire, they had all avoided it as if they had made an appointment.
Moreover, there were no refugees in the city. They were basically the people of the city. In order to prevent refugees from entering the city, the city gates had been tightly sealed.
Fortunately, there was no shortage of food in the city at that time, but there was ack of medicine. Originally, they had to import medicine from the countys medicine store. Now that the county was destroyed, their medicine import channels were all cut off.
MO Ruyue used a cart of medicinal herbs to exchange for an entry pass. It shouldnt be too much of a problem to arrange for Doctor Li to enter the city alone.
As for other matters in the future, she couldnt manage them and didnt want to manage them.
After all, the two of them only had a casual rtionship, and she had already done her best.
MO Ruyue watched the carriage leave and stood in ce for a long time, unwilling to leave.
Speaking of which, this was the first time she had been separated from Gu Ying after reuniting with him.
A distance of fifty miles was not considered far. In order to return at the fastest speed, they had even switched to the big ck horse. However, she still felt that when he left, he had already taken her heart away.
It wasnt like they hadnt split up when they were trying to save people, but she didnt have such a strong sense of reluctance at that time. The shadow of the carriage was still clearly visible, but she had already begun to miss him.
Forget it, Ill use this time to go back to Qin Vige to take a look.
MO Ruyue didnt intend to stand there and wait for Gu Ying to return. He knew very well where to find her next.
This time, after she got on the horse, she couldnt run anymore. The entire official road was smashed into a mess, and she could only rely on her horse-riding skills to slowly move forward.
If thats the case, it wont be easy for Gu Ying to drive the carriage backter.
MO Ruyue had only walked about a hundred meters when she stopped her horse.
She had changed her mind. The carriage would definitely sink into the potholes again and again. She didnt want to wait for Gu Ying to appear at the Qin Vige.
She left a secret signal at the ce where they were going to part and told Gu Ying to wait for her for a while. MO Ruyue then shed into the space.
This time, she was going to see the babies. Ever since she left and started her rescue journey, she had almost not seen the babies.
Now that the Qin Vige was in front of her, she decided to go see them and correct her mentality.
MO Ruyue had just entered the space when she heard San Bao shouting, Mother is back! Everyone,e out! Dont let Mother run away!
The other four babies appeared out of nowhere. The closest one was actually Tang Tang, who was less than twenty meters away from MO Ruyue.
The top of her head was stained with grass, and she had entered the herbal field at some point in time. She didnt look like she was picking herbs, but more like she was lying in ambush.
As for who they were ambushing, it was obvious.
Mother, dont leave me behind!
Tang Tang immediately ran over. She had grown a bit taller now. Although she still had short legs, she could still run very fast.
Slow down, Mother wont leave, be careful you dont fall!
MO Ruyue called out repeatedly, feeling both amused and distressed.
She didnt know how long the babies had thought of this idea, how long they had been waiting for her, and what kind of feelings they had when they finally found her today. They tried their best to stop her from leaving.
Just as these thoughts shed through her mind, Tang Tang had already plunged into her arms and hugged her thigh tightly.
The second person to rush over was San Bao. He was currently the one with the highest martial strength among the babies, and his running speed was like a little leopard with its four ws spread out.
MO Ruyue was afraid that he wouldnt be able to stop in time and bump into Tang Tang, so she immediately picked her up with both hands and then used one hand to slow down San Baos speed.
Perhaps it was because they saw that MO Ruyue really had no intention of leaving, the three babies slowed down in the end, especially Tang Tang, who started walking directly.
Mother, why havent youe to see us? Dont you miss us?
After Tang Tang was lifted up, she immediately hugged MO Ruyues neck tightly and said pitifully in MO Ruyues ear.
Mother, weve been waiting for you for a long time. This time, youve left for a longer time than all the previous timesbined. We all thought that you didnt want us anymore.
San Baos eyes were red as well, but he wiped his eyes hard and forced his tears back.
Mother, youve returned.
Er Bao walked over with Si Bao. He didntin about anything. Instead, he greeted MO Ruyue with a normal expression, as if she had juste home from a consultation.
Da Bao was the only one who stood far away. He didntin or talk to her. He just looked at her quietly from a distance.
That gaze made MO Ruyues hair stand on end. Even when facing the worlds most brutal and perverted assassin, she had never felt this way. Now, facing a twelve-year-old child, this kind of feeling inexplicably came.
Mother has been busy saving people outside these days. Every time Ie back, I take some food, herbs, and necessities, so I didnt have the time to say hello to you.
Even MO Ruyue herself felt that the reason she gave was very far-fetched, so after she finished speaking, she could only kiss Tang Tangs little face to ease her embarrassment.
Whats the situation outside now? Weve been staying here all this time and dont know anything. Mother, cant you let us go out and help?
Er Bao immediately seized the opportunity to ask the question that everyone had been thinking about during this period of time.
Now, Mother has returned to the county.
MO Ruyue hesitated for a moment but still decided to tell the truth.
Really? Hows the situation there? Mother, have you returned to the Qin Vige?
Er Baos eyes lit up. They were more concerned about the ce where they grew up.
I havent gone to Qin Vige yet, but The county is gone.
At first, MO Ruyue was still hesitating whether to tell them such a cruel truth.
After all, the babies were still too young, and this truth was so cruel.
No It was What do you mean by that?
The babies were stunned and didnt understand what MO Ruyue was saying.
No more. I mean what I said, the county is gone. MO Ruyue repeated. This time, she could clearly see the shock and realization in her babies eyes.
Mother, its all All gone? The Qin Vige No more?
Er Baos lips trembled slightly as he spoke. Although he tried very hard to squeeze out a smile, he still failed in the end.
I havent seen the Qin Vige yet, but two of the mountains in that direction have been cut off. I dont think the situation will be any better. As for the county, theres nothing left except for the ruins.
MO Ruyue told the truth without hiding anything.
Then, shall we go home?
Si Bao asked as well. His voice was trembling, and the tears in his eyes were rolling down. Even though he tried to wipe them away with his hands, they could not stop flowing.
Yes, at least go back and take a look. After all, that is the ce where you were born and grew up. You have to take a look. Perhaps there will be a chance to rebuild it in the future.
It wasnt that MO Ruyue didnt have this thought. With her current connections and financial resources, even if she wanted to rebuild the county, it would be a piece of cake.
But she wasnt sure if she should do that..
Chapter 389 - 389: Valley Of Treasures
Chapter 389: Valley Of Treasures
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Mother, what should we do in the future? Where is our home?
Er Baos mood seemed to have eased up a lot. This time, the question he raised was very realistic.
Home was the ce they would eventually belong to, but it would not be this other room.
This natural disaster affected a wide area. When we left, we used three days and three nights to run at full speed. Although we came back to save people, we were dyed for almost a month. But you can also think about how far we had gone.
Post-disaster reconstruction is not something that can be done in a day or two, and its not something that we should be thinking about. So, after we leave this ce, I will still take you back to the north.
MO Ruyue was a very realistic person, and she considered the most realistic things.
The natural disasters were indeed tragic, but the lives of the living still had to continue.
So what school should her babies go to next so that they could continue to receive a good education? This was the question that she had to consider first.
Were still going north. Does that mean our home will be in the north in the future?
San Baos nerves were obviously thicker. Although his home had been destroyed, and he was really sad to be forced to leave his home, the thought of being able to start a new life made him feel a little excited and expectant.
I had originally nned to bring you to the capital in the future, but that was a n for a few yearster. I didnt expect that a natural disaster would push this n forward so much.
After Mothers matters here are settled, well return the way we came. This time, well go straight to the capital.
Mo Ruyue had originally wanted to walk steadily. She wanted to go from Qin Vige to the county town first and make a temporary transition. Then, she would go to Ping City and slowly walk further.
However, the bridge was gone and Ping City was not in her path. Hence, she did not take a detour. It must be a post-disaster city waiting to be rebuilt.
Even if she had the intention to help rebuild some ces, it would be under the condition that the babies were settled in and would not be affected by their normal lives and studies.
Her familys situation had not been settled yet, and she did not have the mood to help others rebuild it.
They entered the capital.
These two words made the babies feel dizzy.
The furthest they had been to was the county, but now they were going to the capital. This was something they didnt even dare to dream of, which somewhat diluted some of the sadness at this time.
Alright, Im going out now. Uncle Gu Ying is still waiting for me outside.
Although MO Ruyue had only spoken a few words to the babies, it had already swept away all the guilt and avoidance that had been pent up in her heart these
What she needed to do now was to return to the outside world and finish what she had not been able to finish in time.
Mother, when you return to the Qin Vige, can you let us go out and take a look? Perhaps after leaving this time, I will never have the chance toe back.
San Bao quickly made a request when he saw that she was about to leave.
Dont worry, Ill first make sure theres no danger outside before I bring you guys out.
MO Ruyue readily agreed.
That was her original n, but she would have to wait until she went to the Treasure Valley and was ready to leave. Then, she would let her babies take ast look.
After getting permission, the boys heaved a sigh of relief and were no longer as nervous as before. Only Tang Tang was still clinging to MO Ruyue and refused to get off.
Mother, you really wont be gone for another ten days before you return, Although she was with her brothers, Grandfather Liu, and Grandmother Liu, she still missed the days when her mother was by her side.
It wouldve been great if she had a little sister.
Tang Tang secretly thought to herself. She didnt dare to let MO Ruyue find out what she was thinking.
Her father was no longer around, and her mother could not conjure up a little sister on her own, so she had better think about it secretly and forget it. She did not want to say it out loud to make her mother sad.
Tang Tang, Mother will pick you up soon. Be good and wait for Mother at home, okay?
MO Ruyue sighed. She had made Tang Tang sad and scared this time. She didnt know how long it would take tofort her.
However, this was also her fault in the first ce. She should justmunicate with the babies properly. Why did she have to hide?
After a long period offort, Tang Tang was finally put down. She waved at MO Ruyue and sent her out of the space.
Bing Er, youvee out.
Gu Ying had already returned to the ce where they parted. After seeing the message MO Ruyue had left, he waited at the same ce and saw here out not long after.
Yes, when I was on my way back, I was ambushed by the babies. I dont know how long theyve been waiting for me. Ive finally met them today.
MO Ruyue exined what had just happened in detail in a reproachful tone, but one could not see how much affection she had in her eyes.
Gu Ying listened to her quietly. His eyes were like water, and there was a gentle smile on his face.
What are you smiling at me for?
MO Ruyue raised her head and saw his gaze. She couldnt help but punch his chest lightly.
Only the heavens knew why she had so many of these little girl-like actions now. In the past, she was a pure iron-blooded woman.
Im happy to hear you so happy.
Gu Yingughed and reached out to tuck her loose hair behind her ear, then gently touched her cheek with his fingers.
Every action of his was telling her how precious she was to him.
Ying, lets go. The carriage cant go on the next road, and its dangerous to ride a horse as well. Its safer for us to walk.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but look away.
His gaze was gentle and warm, and she really couldnt resist it.
The two peoples speed was extremely fast, and in the blink of an eye, they had covered dozens of miles.
As expected
MO Ruyue stopped in her tracks.
The original location of the Qin Vige had already be a deep pit. Only the house closest to the vige entrance still had half a wall left, showing that someone had once lived there.
There were several cracks on the road leading to the back of the mountain, which should be the traces left by the tail of the meteorite when it fell.
The fire on the mountain had long been extinguished, leaving only charred trees, some lying down, some standing up.
After seeing the tragic state of the county, MO Ruyue didnt have any illusions about the survivors of the Qin Vige. Thus, she wasnt particrly shocked when she saw the scene in front of her.
However, when she thought about how all the poultry and livestock at home had been reduced to nothing, and how the babies would feel terrible when they saw this, she also felt a little disappointed.
Although she lived in the Qin Vige when she first came to this world, if her babies werent here, she wouldnt have any sense of belonging to this ce or even this world.
Therefore, even if the Qin Vige and the county were destroyed by natural disasters, it was no different from seeing other ces being destroyed.
Lets go around this pit and enter the mountain. The terrain has changed. It will take some time to find the Treasure Valley.
Gu Ying didnt have any feelings toward the Qin Vige. He was more focused on observing the path on the back mountain. However, those huge cracks almost tore the back mountain apart. One could imagine how dangerous it would be to go up the mountain.
I just took a preliminary look. The rocks on the mountain have been burned to crisp. We have to be extra careful when we step on them. We have to be fast so that we wont causendslides or falling rocks.
Gu Ying squatted down, picked up a tree branch, and began to draw a sketch on the ground.
He was drawing the route to the Treasure Valley based on his memory, and it was a new topographic map derived from the current terrain.
This required a very strong sense of three-dimensional space as well as the ability to calcte, which happened to be one of the strengths of Gu Ying..
Chapter 390 - 390: Triggering A Landslide
Chapter 390: Triggering A Landslide
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When we went up, we brought all the equipment. I went to the equipment warehouse when I returned to the space, and I have prepared two sets of climbing equipment.
With a wave of her hand, two huge mountaineering backpacks appeared by her feet.
Although it was easier to put it in the space, the weight of the backpack was almost nothing to the two of them, and it would not affect their movement.
Gu Ying did not have the authority to control the space yet. If something unexpected happened, it would be toote to retrieve the equipment from her space.
The two of them changed into a more convenient mountaineering suit, put on their protective gear, and then quickly set off with their backpacks.
Just as Gu Ying had said, after being hit by the meteorites and being burned by the fire, the mountain rocks on this side had already been burned soft, especially at the edge of the deep pit. Almost half of ones calf was gone with one step.
Although they were good at light-body techniques, they had no leverage and could only walk out slowly.
This kind of sand umtion was also quite dangerous. If one used the wrong force, it would form a terrible quicksand and sink them all to the bottom of the sand umtion.
Ying, look, whats that?
MO Ruyue raised her hand and pointed. Fifty meters in front of them, a shiny metal attracted their attention.
Thats a meteorite, the part that wasntpletely burned.
Gu Ying understood MO Ruyues meaning almost immediately.
Meteorites like this were excellent forging materials. Even if only a little of it was added, it could immediately increase the toughness and sharpness of the calcined object by several times.
Moreover, it might contain rare elements that this didnt have. This was not only a great temptation for MO Ruyue, but also for him.
Ill go get it.
He was just about to take action when he was stopped.
No, Im light. Im the most suitable person to go.
MO Ruyue pointed at a withered tree in the distance. Lets go there first and secure the rope. If I get stuck, you can pull me out.
Will that tree really work?
Gu Ying looked at the burnt tree and suspected that the rope would break once it was tied to it, let alone being used as a leverage.
Of course not. Thats why I want you to watch from the side. Even a rock isnt safe, but its better than nothing.
Although this n was very risky, it wasnt without room for maneuver.
Along the way, the two of them paid attention to the craters, but they didnt find any remains of meteorites. This was the first one they saw, and it was likely to be thest.
While they were talking, the two of them had arrived next to the dead tree. The good news was that the ground here was rtively harder, and the dead tree was still strong. The bad news was that there was only a stone the size of a watermelon around the tree, and the nearest tree was also ten meters away. Fortunately, the climbing rope that the two of them had brought was long enough. They worked together to set up four or five safe leverage points, and there was still enough space for MO Ruyue to move freely.
Be careful. If you really cant get it, dont force yourself.
Gu Ying repeatedly checked the safety devices several times, but he was still worried and kept reminding her.
I know, Ill be careful.
MO Ruyues previous missions were many times more dangerous than this. Even Gu Ying had not nagged like this.
You dont believe in my skills? This is just a piece of cake. Its not difficult.
She deliberately made fun of him to ease the atmosphere, but Gu Ying hugged her tightly.
I cant lose you again. Dont even think about it.
His arms were clenched tightly, and his heart was beating so fast that it was deafening.
MO Ruyue raised her hands and wrapped them around his back. She could clearly feel the muscles on his back tense and stiff, and even his body was trembling slightly.
Its okay. Im still here. No one can make me leave you again, not even death.
She softened her voice. As she spoke, she gently stroked his back until his muscles gradually rxed.
Im sorry, I Dont let my emotions affect you.
Gu Ying apologized in a low voice. His hot breath blew on MO Ruyues neck, making her shrink her neck in fear of tickling.
No, with you by my side, I can do what I want without any scruples.
MO Ruyue was not stingy in telling him what she felt in her heart. After experiencing the reunion of life and death, and after witnessing the tragedy after the natural disaster, she felt that she could say what she should say in time so that she would not regret it.
There was once a very popr saying, I dont know which wille first, tomorrow or ident.
In the past, she had always chosen idents, but now she really hoped that every tomorrow with Gu Ying by her side woulde as promised.
MO Ruyue pulled on the climbing rope and stepped on a skateboard to slowly slide down the center of the pit.
The soft soil would cause ones body to sink into the quicksand, but by increasing the area of impact, this situation could be effectively avoided.
The distance from the edge to the center was nearly 100 meters. Normally, it could be covered in the blink of an eye, but now it took less than an hour.
GuYing slowly lowered the rope. He had been paying close attention to Mo Ruyues feet and the changes in the surrounding ground. This way, he wouldnt miss an strange movements and would be able to notice in advance if an ident happened.
During MO Ruyues descent, he also saw many fungi strains brought by the meteorites. There were more of them than anywhere else, and there were no signs that they had been picked.
It must be because there was almost no one here, so the bacteria strains were preserved.
On her way here, she had kept all the bacteria strains she saw in the storage room of the realm. After all, those extraterrestrial things were quite poisonous. If people who ate them by mistake could not detoxify them in time, they would die without a doubt.
The bacteria that grew in the crater were no exception. They were all taken into MO Ruyues medium, which was why she had taken so long to reach the center.
At the point of impact, there was a ck stone. Although it was still covered in dark clouds, the stone still had a metallic luster, which was particrly eye-catching.
MO Ruyue didnt continue to approach. Instead, he used a special lead clip to pick up the stone and quickly put it into another lead box.
This kind of equipment could effectively prevent radiation. It was also made by MO Ruyue after she predicted the meteorite rain. The purpose was to collect meteorite fragments, and now it was indeed put to use.
Just as MO Ruyue put the meteorite into the lead box and was about to return, the ground under her feet suddenly shook.
The originally soft ground began to rise and fall like boiling water. There were also faint thunderous soundsing from the mountain, and gravel kept rolling down.
Ying,e down!
MO Ruyue realized that this was an earthquake that had triggered andslide. Soon, there would be even greater falling rocks and mountain copses crashing down. Even if she sessfully rose to the edge of the crater, it would be toote.
She made a prompt decision to let Gu Ying jump down. As long as she could touch his hand, she would be able to bring him into the space.
Gu Ying immediately jumped onto the rope and used the taut climbing rope as a leverage point to slide down quickly in MO Ruyues direction..
Chapter 391 - 391: The Knot In Da Bao l s Heart
Chapter 391: The Knot In Da Bao l s Heart
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
In the blink of an eye, the falling rocks on the mountain had already arrived. The huge rock made a deafening sound and crushed everything in its way, crashing down with the force of a thunderbolt.
The mountain rocks and dead trees that were originally used to secure the rope were also easily destroyed. MO Ruyue lost the pulling force almost instantly, and her body sank down.
Gu Ying tapped on the rope again and instantly appeared beside her. When the two of them held hands, they both disappeared.
At the same time, all the fallen stones and withered trees also spread over, instantly covering the ce where the two had once been.
As soon as the two of them returned to the interspace, the wolf pack reacted and sent a message to the babies in the yard. Not long after, they ran out of the yard and surrounded them.
Mother, Uncle Ying, you two came back so quickly!
San Bao ran the fastest, and as soon as he reached the two, he asked impatiently, Can we go out now?
Although the scenery here was different from that of the outside world, they had already been in there for nearly a month. Even if there was anything new, it was all gone now.
Besides, there was only a pack of wolves here. Grandpa Liu and Grandma Liu were not teachers, so they could only study by themselves. After a long time, they would get bored.
No, we cant get out for the time being.
MO Ruyue shook her head. She could still see outside. Thendslide had not stopped. If it continued, the mountain might copsepletely.
Whats wrong? What happened?
Mother, you wont stop us from going out again, right?
Si Bao had just interrupted when he was interrupted by San Bao.
The mountain outside has copsed. Im afraid that when you get out, you wont be able to see what it was like before.
In fact, there was no possibility of rebuilding it.
She silently added another sentence in her heart.
In fact, after this disaster, the hidden dangers of the back mountain had greatly increased. Now that the mountain hadpletely copsed, it was not a bad thing. At least, the hidden dangers had been eliminated and there was no longer any hope.
How could this be
When the babies heard the news, they were all stunned.
They couldnt imagine what it would be like after thendslide, but at least one thing was clear: there would be no more Qin Vige.
I know its hard for you to ept this news, but its already happened, so ept the reality. Ive promised you that Ill let you see this ce again before
I leave.
But it must be after Ive confirmed the safety of the outside world. So, before that, Ill stay here for the time being.
MO Ruyue was also very helpless. However, she had just obtained the meteorite, so she could study some things in theboratory.
The babies all seemed to be in low spirits, and Gu Yings offer to teach them how to ride a horse sessfully diverted their attention.
Really? Mother, can we learn how to ride a horse with Uncle Ying?
The one who cheered the loudest and was the most excited was naturally San Bao. He was the most martial-loving and active one among all the babies. He was the one who usually took care of the ck horse, brown horse, and the big young mule at home.
Go, but you have to be careful and act within your means.
MO Ruyue originally wanted to go to theboratory, but when she saw that the babies were all surrounding Gu Ying, and only Da Bao was standing far away without giving any response, she sighed and gave up her original n.
Let me go with you guys. Itll be faster this way.
This was supposed to be the best time for GuYing to be alone with the babies and to improve their rtionship. However, with Da Baos attitude, Mo Ruyue felt that she should y the role of a lubricant.
Da Bao stared at MO Ruyue for a while but didnt say anything. He still stood silently at the side.
Originally, he should have chosen a more docile and shorter horse for his first ride, but now the conditions were limited. Whether it was MO Ruyues original horse or the one she brought from the Bai family, they were all very tall horses.
Gu Ying did a simple demonstration on the horse, focusing on the control of the center of gravity, and then began to help the babies experience riding the horse one by one.
I dont need any help.
While the other babies were enjoying it, Da Bao rejected them.
Alright, then you can do it yourself.
Gu Ying was also very straightforward and directly handed the reins of the brown horse to Da Bao.
Although the big ck horse had been taken care of by the children, it was too fierce and was not as gentle as the brown horse. It was also too tall and was not suitable for the first practice of a novice.
Although Da Bao didnt have enough food and clothes for a long time, MO Ruyue had been using appropriate ways to supplement the babies with nutrition and repair their damaged vital qi.
In addition, the babies had always been practicing martial arts and had been cleansed by a small amount of spirit spring water. Their physical fitness was stronger than that of an average adult.
Da Bao was very tall. He was already 12 years old, but his body size wasparable to that of a 15 or 16 -year-old boy.
But even so, it was not easy to be at ease on ones first horse.
Da Bao took the reins and touched the brown horses hair. When it stabilized, he stepped into the stirrup, twisted his waist, and got on the horse in an instant.
The brown horse only took a few steps back and calmed down under hisfort. It even bent its head back and wanted to rub against Da Baos leg to show affection.
Although Da Bao looked calm, he could not hide the excitement in his eyes. He tried his best to recall the things that Gu Ying had mentioned just now. He lowered his center of gravity slightly, his legs naturally ced on the two sides of the horses belly, and his hands did not pull the reins tightly.
It was not difficult for the babies to keep bnce on the horseback as they could already run and jump on the quincuncial piles.
Gu Ying still didnt say anything. He didnt rush to correct Da Baos mistakes in the details. Instead, he just stood aside and watched quietly.
MO Ruyue was helping Tang Tang to sit on the big young mule. She did not interfere with the interaction between the two of them, but also chose to wait and see.
To untie the knot in Da Baos heart, she couldnt be in a hurry. She had to give him more time to adapt.
Da Bao knocked the horses belly lightly, and the brown horse started to move forward ording to his instructions. He also adjusted his center of gravity naturally with the horses swaying. He seemed to be very familiar with this.
Big Brother, youre a fast learner. Look at me, I couldnt even hold my center of gravity properly just now. San Bao said enviously.
Although his martial arts talent was very high, and it was a piece of cake for him to find a bnce, but unfortunately, he was afraid of heights!
Although the height of the plum blossom stakes at home was simr to that of the horses back, the stakes were dead while the horse was alive. As a result, he felt a little dizzy and his hands and feet were not coordinated well.
Youre just not used to it yet. Youll be fine after a few more practices.
Da Bao knew his younger brother very well. No matter what difficulties he faced, as long as he made up his mind, he would do anything right.
Of course, MO Ruyue had also noticed this. This situation should be a kind of motion vertigo, and it was also a physical illness.
This was something that could be interfered with through treatment, so it was not difficult.
She was going to give the babies a full-body examination and then give them targeted treatment.
She had only seen this type of motion vertigo on San Bao before, but she didnt know if the other babies had any other simr conditions..
Chapter 392 - 392: The Secret Of The Space
Chapter 392: The Secret Of The Space
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After you are able to skillfully change your center of gravity, you can control the horse to trot, walk slowly, turn, and other actions. Of course, the most important thing is not to let the horse feel your tension and anxiety. Only then will itpletely rx and cooperate with you.
Gu Ying interjected.
Da Bao only nced at him and didnt reply, but he obviously heard what he said.
Although he still had a psychological aversion to Gu Ying, he was not careless in learning what he should learn.
This was also something that made MO Ruyue feel very assured. At least Gu Yings efforts had not been in vain.
Da Baos progress was very smooth, so he was allowed to practice riding alone on the side, while Gu Ying and MO Ruyue went to teach the other babies.
However, their attention had never left Da Bao. They were always paying attention to his movements. Even though he had reached the peak of his practice, they did not rx.
Once he started practicing, time passed by very quickly.
It was not until two hourster that MO Ruyue took the initiative to stop.
Alright, all of you are beginners, so thats all for today. Remember to rx, or youll have a hard time tomorrow morning.
She carried Tang Tang down from the horses back and was about to drag San Bao down from the horses back.
At this moment, the brown horse seemed to have received some kind of shock. It suddenly stood up on its hind legs and galloped away.
Although Gu Ying was standing far away, he had been paying attention to Da
Bao. He almost instantly jumped on the big ck horse and chased after him.
Da Bao also tried to pull the reins to control the horse, but it was as if his innate divine strength had suddenly lost its effect. Not only did he not stop the horse, but he also made it run faster.
He immediately bent down and used his calves to mp tightly on the horses abdomen, lifting his body off the horses back. By adjusting his center of gravity, he tried to integrate himself with the horse.
Tighten the reins. Dont make the horse more nervous. Let it calm down. Gu Yings voice suddenly sounded in her ear.
Da Bao turned around and realized that he was just following him. Other than giving him a reminder, he did not do anything else.
Focus your attention. Gu Ying added.
Da Bao tightened the reins little by little and controlled the strength of the tightening, sending a signal to the brown horse to stop.
The frightened horse gradually calmed down and slowed down under Da Baos orders.
Da Bao had also gradually gotten used to the horses speed. He could even pat the brown horses neck tofort it.
Slowly, the horses speed slowed down, and it finally started to walk slowly.
Alright, get off your horse and take a look at why your horse is startled. Gu Ying also stopped his horse, dismounted, and walked over.
Da Bao did not need anyones help when he got off the horse. Instead, he turned around and flipped off the back of the horse. He did not have motion vertigo like San Bao, nor was he afraid of heights. He got off the horse in a much more straightforward manner than when he got on it.
Although he didnt respond to Gu Yings words, he still began to carefully inspect the brown horse ording to his instructions.
This horse had always been very docile and would not run away in fear for no reason. There must be some reason.
I found it!
After Da Bao examined the brown horse from top to bottom, he finally found the problem.
He turned the wasp over and carefully took out a dead wasp.
A wasp? Ive never seen this thing here, where did ite from? Da Bao asked in surprise.
This ce was vast, but other than the poultry and livestock that his mother had brought in, as well as horses and wolves, he had not seen any other living things.
The herbal field not far away was almost as wide as the sky, and there were no bees or butterflies to pass on pollen to it, but it was growing very well. No one knew how it grew.
Whats wrong? Have you found the cause of the horse fright?
After MO Ruyue settled the babies, she immediately rode over and asked Da Bao about the details.
Its a wasp. It must have flown into the horses ear and stung it, causing the horse to be frightened.
As Gu Ying spoke, Da Bao also handed the wasp over.
Mother, other than the livestock and wolves you brought in, there doesnt seem to be a single insect. Where did this waspe from?
Maybe I brought it in when I was nting herbs?
MO Ruyue was also a little uncertain.
She had never paid attention to whether there were insects in her space.
As long as she touched something with her hands, she could put it into her space with her mind. Perhaps, she had put the wasps into her space when she was collecting the herbs.
As soon as she thought of it, she heard a few cries of rm from afar.
MO Ruyue and the other two looked in the direction of the sound. In the distance, a gradually growing sphere was floating over.
That is Bees and insects? Da Bao asked in surprise.
She could never have imagined that not only could bees fly with wings, but even insects without wings could also fly in the air and gather into a ball to approach her.
Only MO Ruyue and Gu Ying knew what was going on.
MO Ruyue was like the God in this space. If she wanted to gather all the bees and insects, it was only a thought and she could do it. It was much more convenient than catching them by hand.
The babies in the distance also looked over in surprise and pointed at the bug
There are so many bees and insects. We still have to distinguish the beneficial ones and the harmful ones. The beneficial ones should be left behind, and the harmful ones should be eliminated.
MO Ruyue said this, but in her heart, she was thinking of sending those bees out of the space.
With the existence of the spirit spring water, all the nts and herbs didnt need bees pollinating. Todays incident also gave her a reminder that it was better to get rid of those insects.
Mother, whats going on? How can a bug without wings fly?
Da Bao i s anger rose. He had never seen such a strange situation before. Now that he had seen it, he had to figure out the truth.
This is a method of pest control that is only effective here. Alright, you should get on your horse and go back. Look at the time, its almost time to make lunch.
MO Ruyue could only give him an ambiguous exnation and then changed the topic.
Alright, Ill go back and help Si Bao.
Da Bao was not satisfied with this answer, but they had always been eating on time. Even if MO Ruyue did not say anything, his bodys natural reaction was reminding him that it was time to eat.
He then mounted the horse again. This time, he was much more familiar with it. He immediately urged the horse in the direction of his home.
Bing Er, are you going to tell them the secret of this space slowly? Gu Ying walked over and said as he looked at Da Baos back.
Yes, thats what I n to do for now. Since we already know about this space, there are some things that we should let them slowly understand. That way, we can save time to exin.
Other than the fact that he and Gu Yings souls had transmigrated, MO Ruyue had already told her babies her other biggest secret. She really didnt miss out on any small details.
They quickly got on their horses and returned to the courtyard to prepare lunch with their babies..
Chapter 393 - 393: Minimize The Risk
Chapter 393: Minimize The Risk
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Although thendslide outside had stopped, MO Ruyue was not in a hurry to leave the medium.
The falling rocks were not stable. If they went out now, they would have to hide in the space again.
So, she stayed in the space with peace of mind and prepared lunch for the babies.
He stayed until the next morning. MO Ruyue checked the situation outside as usual. There were finally no more falling rocks and aftershocks.
After eating breakfast, MO Ruyue tidied up his backpack and prepared to set off with Gu Ying.
All of you just wait here obediently for me toe back. When Im not around, you cant practice riding. San Bao, especially you, you cant promise to do it in secret!
MO Ruyue specifically reminded him.
San Bao scratched the back of his head in embarrassment. Mother, I know. I wont.
Originally, he had thought that as long as his mother was not around, he would be able to persuade his big brother and then he would be able to practice riding a horse. He didnt expect his mother to be one step ahead of him and actually block his way in advance.
Im here, Da Bao said with a serious expression. Nothing will happen.
Da Baos interest in horse-riding practice had also been greatly reduced after the incident yesterday.
It was already so dangerous when his mother and Gu Ying were around. How could he take care of his younger siblings all by himself?
It was better to keep a close eye on them and find a more suitable opportunity to practice.
Once MO Ruyue came out of the space, she found that there was a big problem.
Every time she entered the space, she woulde out in the same ce
She had been in the crater created by the meteorite, and now it was filled with fallen rocks. Two giant rocks happened to fall at the ce where they entered the space.
If it wasnt for the fact that they had created a small space between them, she wouldnt even be able to get out of that space. Wouldnt she have been trapped here forever?
Ying, try to feel the rocks outside. Weve been buried this time, so we have to be careful.
The space that MO Ruyue hade out of was rtively inner, so she could only let Gu Ying, who was further out, test the soil and rocks outside the two huge rocks.
Back then, they had rescued the young woman who had been smashed to death in this way. They had not expected that they would fall into the same predicament today.
However, it wasnt difficult for MO Ruyue, who had all kinds of tools and hot weapons, to escape.
As usual, GuYing observed the falling rocks outside the Boulder, carefully analyzing how to avoid causing a second copse.
After a long while, he said to MO Ruyue, f we want to get out now, we can only rely on explosives. Ive already calcted the dosage. Itll let us get out of here without causing a second copse or aftershock.
When we get back to the realm, Ill mix the explosives and thene out to install them. Well be able to get out very soon.
Okay, but the remains of the explosion Youre sure you wont be dug out again, right? MO Ruyue said hesitantly.
They were using the more destructive TNT explosives of the future. This was a monster that would cause endless trouble if it was released.
You dont trust my abilities?
Gu Ying raised an eyebrow and MO Ruyueughed.
I was wrong. If you cant control the amount of explosives, no one can. She brought Gu Ying back to the medium and went straight to the weapons warehouse.
In just the time it took to make a cup of tea, he had finished preparing the required explosives.
Although that piece of rock wasnt heavy in his hand, it weighed heavily on his heart.
Dont worry, there wont be any traces left behind after the explosion. No matter who released this beast, it cant be you or me.
Gu Yings point of view was the same as MO Ruyues on this point, so he would pay more attention to this point.
Yes, Im a little worried.
MO Ruyue shook her head and brought Gu Ying out of the medium. He began to install explosives and prepared to leave this ce.
The dosage calcted by Gu Ying was very urate, so urate that even if it was detonated, it would not cause a second copse, and it just happened to blow up a gap for the two of them to get out.
When the smoke outside had dispersed, the two came out of the space and walked up along the pile of stones.
The scenery outside hadpletely changed. The entire back mountain seemed to have been split open by an axe, and half of it had copsed.
The nted mountain rocks buried the entire in Viges original location. This time, there was no possibility of rebuilding it.
Are we still going to the Treasure Valley? From the looks of it, the road over there ispletely cut off, and it wont be easy to go around it.
Gu Ying didnt say this, but MO Ruyue knew it very well. Just by looking at the extent of the copse of the back mountain, it wasnt hard to imagine what the mountain range would look like.
Lets go and take a look. Theres nothing else to do now. Ill feel uneasy if I dont take a look.
MO Ruyue still wanted to go to the mirror dimension to take a look. If the Treasure Valley was also destroyed, then her fate with that senior would bepletely cut off.
Alright, then lets go this way.
Gu Ying took out the map he had drawn based on his memory,pared it again, and pointed out a way for her.
The two of them quickly resumed their journey. Although there were no familiarndmarks to refer to, their extremely high sense of direction allowed them to move forward without any hesitation.
This journey could be said to be a dangerous one, with falling rocks and broken cliffs appearing at any time. However, the two of them had long been used to harsher environments, so it did not affect their speed in the slightest.
Four hourster, MO Ruyue stood at the edge of thest cliff and stopped.
On the other side of the cliff was a familiar cave entrance, but the rock wall on the other side was made of smooth boulders, and there was no ce to hold the hook.
It will take a few days to go around it.
Gu Ying looked at the cliffs on both sides and came to a conclusion.
You cant even catch the nail gun? If you use the strongest block) the force should be enough. MO Ruyue said with uncertainty.
However, the entrance to the cave of treasures was not naturally formed. Since it could cut out such a smooth surface like cutting tofu, the impact of the nail gun must have pierced very deep.
Its too dangerous. Itll be easy to escape the hook when we slide over. We wont even have time to react.
Gu Ying immediately rejected this suggestion.
If he was alone, he wouldnt mind giving it a try. But now that he had Mo Ruyue by his side, he definitely didnt want her to take even the slightest risk.
Then lets take a detour, but which way should we go?
MO Ruyue didnt insist. She also felt that the nail gun wasnt very reliable. No matter what, her intuition had saved her many times. There was nothing wrong with trusting her intuition.
Wait, I remember that there are strong suction cups in the tool library. Maybe I can improve it and minimize the risk.
Originally, the two of them had already considered various situations and had already made improvements to the tools. However, they still missed the current situation. It seemed that they had to go back again.
You said that wed be well-prepared in the past. Whats going on now?
MO Ruyue sighed. The next second, the two of them disappeared from their original spot.
The head of the improved nail gun had a strong suction cup. The huge impact would cause the suction cup to be tightly attached to the smooth mountain wall. In order to prevent idental fall, Gu Ying made a total of five such nail guns.
In order to test if the grip of the nail gun was strong enough, mo Ruhan used two of the nails to do an experiment.
She hung the dummy, which was heavier than her and Gu Yingsbined weight, on the steel cable and slowly lowered it to the other side of the cliff.
Even when the dummy slid to the opposite side, the suction cup did not move at all. The rock wall of the opposite cliff did not show any cracks or loosen either. It seemed like there was no problem..
Chapter 394 - 394: A Dangerous Moment
Chapter 394: A Dangerous Moment
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ill go over first, you can follow meter.
Once again, Gu Ying was the first to put on his equipment.
Alright, be careful.
MO Ruyue didnt try to persuade him to change his mind. Gu Ying couldpromise on anything, but when it came to her safety, he would neverpromise.
She carefully checked the rope that was tied to this side and buclded her own safety.
If something happened to Gu Ying while he was gliding, she would not hesitate to use any method to save him.
The moment Gu Ying got on the rope, he used his fastest speed to climb over to the other side. He didnt try to move forward slowly, but chose to speed up.
Although this increased the risk of danger, it also shortened the time needed to pass through. In addition, he lifted his breath to reduce his weight, which also reduced the pressure on the rope, making up for the safety factor.
Just when Gu Ying was ten meters away from the other side, MO Ruyue sharply discovered that a crack had appeared on the cliff wall where the nail guns suction cups had pierced.
Ying, quick, the rope is going to fall!
Her heart was in her throat, and she immediately warned Gu Ying and began to adjust the position of the air cushion.
When the rope broke, even if the person did not fall down on the spot, the impact of the rope swinging over and hitting the cliff was enough to knock the person out and seriously injure him.
Therefore, the two of them had also prepared air cushions that would hang down from the cliff to act as a buffer.
As for how to recycle this air cushion after this, MO Ruyue didnt have time to think about it.
When Gu Ying heard the news, he simply unbuckled the safety buckle, turned over and got on the steel rope. With two leaps, he arrived on the opposite side, and at the same time, he attached the small suction cups in his hands tightly to the cliff wall.
He could clearly see the cracks around the suction cups. If he did not move to the hole quickly, he would fall into the abyss with the broken rocks.
There was a distance of three meters between hisnding point and the entrance of the cave. To him, this was just a swing to borrow some strength. Gu Ying fired a nail gun into the hole, then directly let go of the string and swung over.
Just as his fingers touched the edge of the cave, the wall that was originally attached to the suction cups began to break. Then the suction cups fell and mmed straight toward the opposite wall with the steel cable.
Bing Er, be careful!
Before Gu Ying entered the cave, he turned around and roared at the other
MO Ruyues speed wasnt slow either. When she saw Gu Ying preparing to swing into the cave, she had already started to unbuckle her safety buckle.
Seeing the steel ropeing towards her, she suddenly held the steel rope in her hand and with a thought, the aggressive steel rope disappeared into thin air.
Ill go back to the origin space to take a look. I dont want to scare the babies. She shouted at Gu Ying and disappeared in the next second.
Gu Ying flipped into the hole and began toy safety buckles in the hole. He was prepared to wait for MO Ruyue toe out of the space and then fix the hook rope of the nail gun on the safety buckle.
As soon as MO Ruyue entered the space, she saw that her babies were squatting around the steel cable on the ground and studying it with their heads touching.
As soon as she heard the movement behind her, she immediately turned his head and activated the 100000 whys mode.
Mother, where did you get this thing? Is it a rope? Its different from a straw rope, its both soft and hard, so strange!
Yes, Mother, we were ying in the courtyard when we heard a loud bang outside. This thing fell from the sky. Did you get it from outside? Did we also fall from the sky like this?
Mother, this is a rope, right? It feels much stronger than a straw rope, and its quite heavy!
They talked all at once, making MO Ruyue dizzy. She didnt know where to start with so many questions.
Alright, save your questions for when Im done with my business. I was afraid that something that appeared out of thin air would hurt or scare you, so I came back to take a look.
Stay at home these days Well, Ill draw a range. Dont go beyond this range when you y, and there wont be any problems.
Seeing that the babies were fine, Mo Ruyue prepared to leave. GuYing was still waiting for her outside.
Mother, are we just going to leave this here? You and Uncle Gu Ying should have already arrived at the Qin Vige, right?
Er Bao squeezed his way over. He was very interested in the strange rope and asked the question that the babies were most concerned about.
You dont have to worry about that. Just do what you need to do. I still have things to do here, so you all have to be good!
She urged them again and again, and when she saw that the babies all agreed obediently, she shed out of the space.
Without the impact of the steel rope, the rock wall would not be affected. MO Ruyue also put away the air cushion and then looked across.
Bing Er, Ive already fastened the safety catch. Just fire the nail gun over here, Ill help you fix it.
Gu Ying had already been waiting at the entrance of the cave for a long time. When he saw MO Ruyue appear, he immediately called out to her.
ording to what he said, MO Ruyue fired the nail gun directly at the side of the hole. He didnt shoot it at the inside of the hole to prevent Gu Ying from being injured by ident.
After some work, the steel cables were set up again.
The trees that were used as anchors had been bent a lot, and the roots that were deeply buried in the ground had also vaguely emerged from the surface. It seemed that they could not continue to dy.
MO Ruyue quickly fastened the safety buckle, but not all of it. Looking at the current situation, it was very likely that when she was sliding halfway, the big tree here would bepletely pulled out of the ground.
Ying, the tree over here is loose. Im afraid Ill fall over it.
MO Ruyue told the situation here truthfully. The big tree happened to be blocked by a stone, so he couldnt see the situation at the root.
She pulled the steel cable to the stone and wrapped it tightly.
This rock was not big. Even if it was tied to a steel rope, it could only dy for a few seconds before it was pulled out.
However, these few seconds were enough for her to move forward a little.
As the diameter was reduced, the kic energy produced by the fall would also be reduced, and the force she would use to hit the mountain wall would be reduced ordingly. The safety factor would also increase a lot.
Ill pull you up as fast as I can, so be careful.
Although Gu Ying was worried, he didnt have a better solution for the time being.
After all, he didnt have any space and couldnt take out the air bags andy them on the cliff wall at any time like MO Ruyue. He could only try his best to pull up a distance quickly when the steel rope fell.
Everything was ready. MO Ruyue immediately got on the steel rope and began to slide across.
She also chose speed over stability. Just as she was halfway through the slide, the steel rope began to shake violently.
The tree that was used as a anchor was nted more and more. It had formed a 45 -degree angle with the ground, leaving only a few thick roots that were firmly stuck in the ground.
MO Ruyue released two more locks, and her sliding speed suddenly increased.
After a few more meters, the whole tree suddenly fell.
The rock that she had used as a backup didntst long either. It was pulled out and slid down the cliff.
MO Ruyue had long been prepared. A red light shed in her hand, and she directly cut off the steel cable two meters behind her. The force of the copse immediately brought her to the opposite rock wall.
This was a choice she had to make. If she didnt cut off the steel cable in time, the trees and stones tied to it would only increase the weight and speed of her fall. Even if Gu Ying was born with divine strength, it wouldnt be able to pull such a huge falling force.
At that time, not only would she be in danger, but she might even bring Gu Ying down the cliff and fall down with her.
However, her steel cable had been broken from the back, so it was destined that she couldnt borrow strength from Gu Ying to leap over directly. Instead) she had to endure the force of that p..
Chapter 395 - 395: Black Mist
Chapter 395: ck Mist
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue was still able to adjust her posture in the few seconds she was falling. She fired another nail gun. This time, the target was the rock wall diagonally above the cave.
Relying on the strength of the tightening rope to help her rise quickly, under the three-pronged attack, she had already reduced the force of the p to the lightest.
Finally, when they were close to the cliff wall, they heard a bang and a huge airbag appeared out of thin air. MO Ruyue immediately hit the airbag.
The airbag only appeared for a second and then disappeared into thin air. However, the buffering power of that second had removed thest bit of force from the p.
Gu Ying increased the speed at which he pulled the rope. MO Ruyue also climbed up in cooperation and soon reached out to grab the edge of the hole.
Were finally here. It wasnt easy.
MO Ruyue stood at the familiar cave entrance She first looked in the direction of the Treasure Valley. It was dark there, giving her a bad feeling.
She turned her head to look at the opposite side, thinking of the hardships she had gone through, and her heart was filled with emotion.
A bridge flying from north to south, a natural chasm turning into a path.
She remembered a poem by a great man and could not help but read it out loud.
It was just that the heavenly chasm was still the heavenly chasm now, and there was no path to speak of.
Bing Er, I have some news to tell you.
Gu Ying pointed in the direction of the Treasure Valley and said, Over there It seems to be blocked.
You went to take a look? I took a nce just now, but it was pitch ck and I couldnt see anything.
MO Ruyue took off the equipment on her body and looked at the other side of the cave.
If the other side was really blocked, then it would be troublesome. It would be equivalent to them wasting a lot of effort.
No, I thought it wouldnt take long for you to return to the origin space, so Ive been waiting here. But I cant see through it with my eyes, so Im just guessing.
Gu Ying deftly helped her untie the equipment and quickly finished packing the things that had been unloaded. MO Ruyue put them into the medium.
Lets go and take a look. Perhaps our luck isnt that bad.
MO Ruyue maintained an optimistic attitude and led the way to the other end of the cave.
The tunnel was not long, only about twenty meters. With their eyesight, they should be able to see the end of it.
If the passage was not blocked) there should at least be some light, but now there was no light at all, and he could not think of a better exnation.
No, Bing Er, the one in front seems to be Fog?
As Gu Ying spoke, MO Ruyue also stopped.
The passage was filled with the smell of water. When they got closer, they found that there was a ck fog firmly blocking the front not far away. No wonder there was no light passing through.
This isnt a cumulus fog formed by volcanic ash, but its indeed a kind of deposited gas with arge amount of dust particles MO Ruyue carefully observed.
The mist didnt extend toward this side. It was as if it was isted by a transparent wall, and it was extremely distinct.
Wear the protective suit. Who knows whats inside?
Gu Yings suggestion received MO Ruyues approval. The two of them quickly put on their protective clothing and gas masks again before walking into the ck fog.
Ying, look.
MO Ruyue raised her hand and grabbed some flules floating in the mist. Those cotton-like objects were ck and white in color and mixed in the mist, looking very turbid.
Whats going on? Its like volcanic ash, but its not the same thing at all.
Gu Ying came over and picked up the flules, but they did not turn into mud like the volcanic ash.
Lets go forward and see.
Nio Ruyue walked forward again.
It was because of these flules that the mist looked ck andpletely blocked the light source.
As they continued to move forward, a faint light appeared on the other sideo Look, the other side isnt blocked, its all because of this mist.
MO Ruyue turned around, but Gu Yings figure behind her had disappeared.
The two of them were clearly only one foot away from each other, but now there was nothing but ck mist floating in front and behind her, and Gu Ying that was so close to her was nowhere to be seen.
Gu Ying?
MO Ruyue stood in ce and called out. She didnt blindly look around.
The surroundings were quiet, and there was no response.
Am I hallucinating?
She mumbled to herself. Perhaps this phenomenon was rted to the flules in the mist.
At the same time, Gu Ying looked at MO Ruyue who suddenly stood still. He wanted to reach out to pull her shoulder, but he stopped when he was about to touch her.
Her back was stiff and not in a normal state. If he were to make a move rashly, would it affect her?
Although Gu Ying also knew medicine, he was far from being as skilled as MO Ruyue. At least, if something happened to MO Ruyue at this time, he had no way to save her.
He was anxious, but he couldnt lose hisposure. He could only quickly recall what had happened just now.
The flules around him continued to float and spin, as if they were isted by something. They were pushed away as he moved, and did not stain his body.
Wait, the item didntnd on him?
Only then did Gu Ying notice that the flules had been pushed away. His body was spotless, but MO Ruyues body was wrapped in ayer of such things.
Before entering the ck mist, she had scooped up a handful of these flules for him to see and even crushed them for observation, but he had never taken the initiative to touch them from the beginning to the end.
Could it be that this was the reason why she became like this?
Gu Ying observed for a while more and found that although those flules were in a suspended state, as long as they got close to MO Ruyue, they would be absorbed by her body.
It was as if she was a huge ma and those flules were iron scraps.
Gu Ying immediately tied a knot with the climbing rope on his back and directly tied it around MO Ruyues waist. He was also very careful not to have any physical contact with her. Then, he quickly ran out of the range of the ck fog and also pulled MO Ruyue out.
The strangest thing was that when she left the ck mist, the flules attached to her body suddenly separated and floated back into the ck mist.
After all the flules had left, MO Ruyue suddenly moved.
Gu Ying? Ive found you!
You found me? Whats going on? You just stood there without moving and didnt go anywhere!
When Gu Ying said this, MO Ruyue was also stunned.
I didnt go far just now. I wanted to talk to you, but you were gone. I waited for a while and looked everywhere for you. I only saw you just now.
So, I thought I was walking in the ck fog for a long time, but I was actually not moving at all?
Thats right, and I seem to have found the reason.
Gu Ying then told them what he had discovered, and the two of them looked at the flules together.
Then lets do another experiment. Ill go get a sample.
MO Ruyue didnt untie the safety rope around her waist. If she fell into an illusion again, Gu Ying could quickly pull her back.
Its just a sample. Why dont I go?
Gu Ying was still worried about letting her take the sample. Who could guarantee that after being stacked by that unknown thing, there would be no more idents..
Chapter 396 - 396: Killing The Strongest Alien Bacteria
Chapter 396: Killing The Strongest Alien Bacteria
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ill go. Ive had an experience before. Im more familiar with the situation than you.
As expected, MO Ruyue refused. The reason she gave made Gu Ying unable to refuse.
Dont worry, I was just in an illusion just now. Theres no danger. Besides, youre behind me to support me. What could happen to me?
Their worries for each other were connected, so she could empathize with Gu Yings current state of mind.
Alright, Ill keep an eye on your situation. Dont go too far in, ande out immediately if anything goes wrong.
Gu Ying nagged for a long time, and when his eyes met MO Ruyues, he slowly stopped.
Her eyes were rippling and as gentle as water. When she smiled, it was as if she could dispel the fog in front of him and make his world bright and warm in an instant.
I will be careful, for myself and for you.
MO Ruyue smiled and waved at Gu Ying. She changed into a new set of equipment and walked back into the ck fog.
This time, when she entered the ck mist again, MO Ruyue didnt touch those flules. As Gu Ying said, those floating flules avoided her.
Whats the principle of mutual repulsion? If you dont touch it, it will reject you. If you approach it, it will alle together as if it has a life of its own.
Instead of reaching out rashly, she opened the sampling vessel she carried with her, collected some flules with the tool, and then quickly covered it.
In the next second, the flules around them started to gather and attach to the sampling dish. They even started to spread to MO Ruyues hand.
This works too?
MO Ruyue let go in surprise and the sampling dish fell to the ground. If it was not made of metal, it would have been broken.
She watched helplessly as the flules gathered and covered the entire sampling dish in an instant.
After taking out a grabbing tool, MO Ruyue took the sampling dish away as fast as she could and left the range of the ck mist.
The flules attached to it returned to the ck mist, and the sampling dish suddenly began to shake and tilt in the direction of the ck mist.
Look, Ying. Those flules look like theyre alive. They look like theyll break with a pinch. Although we didnt collect much samples here, the force of the impact was quite strong.
MO Ruyue held the sampling dish in her hand and could clearly feel the impact from the sampling dish.
This thing is strange. It seems like it can only be stored in the fog. Why dont we wait for a while and see what will happen if it leaves for a long time?
Gu Ying pulled MO Ruyue to sit down and took out an energy bar and a water bottle from his backpack to hand to her.
Weve been walking all morning. Lets take this time to rest and think of a way.
Since they had nothing urgent to do, they had plenty of time to rx and rest.
MO Ruyue temporarily put down the sampling utensil and sat on the ground with Gu Ying. They ate and drank while looking at the cliff more than twenty meters away.
This huge fault zone should have been caused by yesterdaysndslide. It was unknown if the surrounding towns that had survived the natural disaster would suffer another wave of fatal attacks.
Although they had treated many people along the way, there were still many more people that they were helpless against.
Even if the abilities of the two of them were added with some cheat or bug, they still paled inparison in the face of such a natural disaster.
When we return, there will be another round of trouble. We should think of a way out now.
MO Ruyue suddenly said, then shook her head. Lets observe the situation first. If we can get out of the Treasure Valley from the other side, its best if we donte back.
This side of the cave was still a huge, hard stone wall, but the opposite side was softer, which made the stability and safety of the mountain lower.
The way back would be even more difficult than the way they came.
When that tree was pulled out, the soil around it must have be softer. Its
very difficult to find a safe ce to exert force.
Gu Ying was also watching carefully. His attitude was even less optimistic than MO Ruyues. In the end, his best choice was to take a detour.
Then it seems that we can only take a detour, but
MO Ruyue looked a little hesitant, but Gu Ying saw through her thoughts with one sentence.
Youre thinking that theres still a need to take a detour?
Yes, I promised the babies to let them see the Qin Vige onest time before leaving. Even if the terrain has changed and the original ruins are now under the giant rock, at least they still have it in their hearts.
Then just do it, dont think too much.
Gu Ying was the same as always. His attitude was the driving force for MO
Ruyue to keep moving forward.
Alright, weve had enough rest. Lets go.
MO Ruyue stood up and also picked up the sampling tube.
Arent you going to take it to theboratory for testing? Gu Ying asked in surprise.
Its fine. Since we know that this thing will automatically avoid the human body, then we shouldnt provoke it. Lets hurry through this passage and go to the other side to take a look.
I saw the lighting from the other side just now. Its definitely not blocked.
The two of them put on their equipment again, and this time, they passed through the fog smoothly without any more abnormalities.
Bing Er, look, in the valley
Gu Ying was still at the front, and he stopped when he reached the exit on the opposite side.
MO Ruyue walked over and stood side by side with him. Looking at the scenery outside the cave, she was also stunned.
The entire valley was filled with the alien bacteria, and the fully mature bacteria kept spewing out spores, forming flules that floated in the air.
So its the spore particles of those strains? However, it felt like mud and not particles.
The flules true form being broken through in this way was also beyond MO Ruyues expectations.
It seemed that the extraterrestrial fungus would cause great damage to the human body after being consumed. Its spores could also affect the human nervous system.
It seems that the first thing we have to do after making it this far is to destroy the alien bacteria in this valley.
She was a little curious. If she hadnt taken away all the herbs in the valley, would the extraterrestrial fungi still have a ce to live?
However, they had already found a way to kill the alien bacteria. Even if they had to deal with a valley of them, it would not be a problem.
However, this could be dyed. Their main purpose here was to confirm whether the Mirror Valley was still there.
It was just that it was a little troublesome to walk to the other side.
The alien bacteria covered the entire valley, so it was impossible to walk through it without touching it.
However, if they stepped on the bacteria, they would be infected with the flules and repeat the same mistake in the cave.
So, if we want to go there now, we still need to use the weedizers to clear the way.
MO Ruyue originally wanted to deal with it when she came back, but now it seemed that she could only change her n.
This time, the two of them each carried a spray gun. Once the medicinal liquid inside was sprayed out, the bacteria and spores that came into contact with them would wither.
Just like that, they healed themselves as they advanced. After half an hour, they finally arrived at the other side of the valley.
Its really gone. Although I had this premonition a long time ago, seeing it with my own eyes still feels
MO Ruyue looked at the smooth rock wall and said with some regret and some relief.
Its good that it disappeared like this. At least we know that our fate is over and we dont need to miss it in the future.
Although Gu Ying said this, he still felt a little mncholic in his heart.
Even though he had only met that senior once, the gift he had received was extremely precious.
More importantly, it was a heavenlydder that had dragged him out of the swamp purgatory.
It was the same as rebirth..
Chapter 397 - 397: We’ll Be Together Forever
Chapter 397: Well Be Together Forever
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue walked around the cliff of the valley again and finally returned to the entrance of the valley. Only then did she confirm that the entrance to the Mirror Valley was really gone.
She didnt say anything else. Instead, she and Gu Ying carried the medicine spraying box on their backs and began to clear the alien bacteria in the valley.
The special weedicide she had developed was even more powerful than the famous hundred grass wither in her previous life. Its effect was visible to the naked eye.
After a few rounds, most of the alien bacteria in the valley had been removed.
The flules suspended in the air were also reduced by more than half, and the originally dim light seemed to be brighter.
Ying, do you think the ck fog in the tunnel should be gone soon?
MO Ruyue stood in the middle of the valley and turned to look at the entrance of the valley. It was still dark inside, and she couldnt see what it looked like.
The flulese from the alien bacteria in the valley. Without them and the medicine well spray when we go back, the ck mist will eventually dissipate.
Gu Ying turned to look at the medicine box behind him and shook it again. There was not much medicine left in it.
Bing Er, just one more dose and the rest will bepletely eliminated. We didnt find the entrance to the Mirror Valley this time, so we probably wont have the chance toe back again. But at least we didnt waste our time by getting rid of these hidden dangers.
MO Ruyue was quite open-minded. After all, that was how the origin and the end of fate were. Perhaps they could meet again in other ways if there were any coincidences in the future.
Then, what about the wolf pack?
Compared to dealing with humans, Gu Ying was more willing to interact with animals.
Those giant wolves were now ced in MO Ruyues space and got along well with the babies and the Liu couple. However, they were full of wildness and should return to the forest instead of being kept in the space.
If we can find a suitable mountain forest in the future, its best to let them go.
After all, theres nothing suitable for them to hunt in my space.
MO Ruyue had the same idea as Gu Ying. They didnt want to keep the giant wolves in their own space forever. Perhaps they could find a mountain range suitable for them to return to when they went to the north in the future.
The two of them continued to spray medicine in the valley until the suns shadow moved west before they finally cleared the extraterrestrial fungi in the entire valley.
Alright, weve done a free public welfare cleaning today, and its finally done. Without the threat of the flules, there was no need to wear the protective suit. After MO Ruyue made sure that there were no nts that had slipped through the, she immediately took off the protective suit.
Its alreadyte, so Ill stay in this vcalley for the night. Ill find a way out tomorrow morning.
MO Ruyue didnt n to return to the space to rest. Instead, she was going to set up a tent outside for the night.
Although they wouldnt be contaminated by the spores if they didnt activelye into contact with the flules, they had been wearing protective clothing for so long that it was difficult to guarantee that they wouldnt be contaminated by other things. For safety reasons, it was best to leave them outside.
The protective clothing would also be destroyed on the spot, leaving no traces behind.
The two of them got busy again. After setting up the tent, they picked up some branches and started a bonfire.
Bing Er, look at the sky.
Gu Ying raised his head inadvertently and was stunned for a few seconds.
Then, he pulled MO Ruyue to his side.
MO Ruyue also looked up and was stunned.
It was dusk, and there was still a trace of sunset in the western sky. The bright orange color was gradually covered by the night sky from the east.
There was not a single cloud in the sky, and the entire sky showed a psychedelic gradient, from warm to cold, and then strangely harmonious with each other.
The sun in the west had yet to setpletely, but the moon in the east had already risen high in the sky. Even the stars had appeared one by one, spreading to the west with the sshing twilight.
When MO Ruyue first reunited with Gu Ying, they had watched the night together by burning a bonfire in the wild. But he had never seen such a scene where light and shadow intertwined.
She waspletely immersed in it, even forgetting where she was.
Gu Ying did not disturb her, but focused on her side profile.
The warm orange color dyed her eyes brown, and there was a hint of rity in them. Her curled eyshes fluttered like the wings of a butterfly, and theynded on her eyelids.
It was an unfamiliar face. Although it was also beautiful and cold, it was not a face he was familiar with.
At this moment, when she was staring at the setting sun in the distance, he actually saw a familiar shadow in this body.
Bing Er.
A voice that was almost like a whisper sounded in his ear. MO Ruyue slowly turned his head. His eyes went dark and his lips were tightly blocked by people.
It was soft and cool to the touch. A mouth full of cool and slightly sweet breath spread out, making MO Ruyue close her eyes reflexively and hand herself overpletely.
I just saw you.
After a long time, the tightly closed lips parted. Gu Yings voice was a little hoarse. Every word fell into MO Ruyues lips and lingered between her lips and teeth.
You see me.
MO Ruyue still hadnte back to her senses and couldnt understand the meaning of his words for a moment.
Its the ovepping of two images. Your body and your soul, twopletely
different you.
Gu Ying exined it more clearly. Even though there were two human figures, he didnt feel any sense of disharmony.
Is that so? How did you see it? I want to see it too.
MO Ruyue met his gaze and looked back. There was still a trace of unconsciousness in the bottom of her eyes.
When you were looking at the sunset just now, I was looking at you. Slowly, my original appearance emerged from your body.
Gu Ying answered honestly, but it made MO Ruyueugh.
Im just joking with you, Gu Ying. No matter what youve be, youll always be my Gu Ying. In my eyes, youll always be the man who I can entrust my back and life to.
MO Ruyue didnt know why she suddenly became emotional. She just wanted to tell him these things from the bottom of her heart. Perhaps the sunset just now was too beautiful and stimted her artistic and emotional cells, so she was like this.
Now, I feel that its great to be able to be reborn and reunite with you. At least I still have a chance to make up for the regrets I once had.
Gu Ying pulled MO Ruyue into his arms. He had never revealed his heart like this in the past, even in front of her.
MO Ruyue seemed to have thought of something and suddenly smiled.
Yes, I dont want to leave any more regrets for myself. Gu Ying, lets be together forever. Dont be separated again.
Gu Ying pushed MO Ruyue away in surprise, his sharp brows slightly furrowed.
What, you dont want to?
MO Ruyue raised an eyebrow. She had never thought that Gu Ying would react like this after hearing her confession.
No, I should be the one saying that first. Youre a woman, how can I let you speak first?
The displeasure on Gu Yings face became even more apparent. No, rather than saying that he was displeased, it would be more appropriate to say that he was annoyed and regretful.
It doesnt matter. I used to think that you should be the one to talk about this, but after going through so much together, I dont care about the order anymore. As long as we can be together, its more important than anything
MO Ruyue smiled freely and also had a bit of pride and joy.
Gu Ying turned around silently and looked at the setting sun. The cool color of the sun gradually covered the expression on his face..
Chapter 398 - 398: Black Panther
Chapter 398: ck Panther
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Youre angry?
The smile on MO Ruyues face also slowly disappeared. She didnt think that this matter would be so important to Gu Ying.
Wasnt it more important for two people to confirm their feelings for each other?
Gu Ying didnt say anything. This was the first time he didnt give MO Ruyue any clear response.
After realizing the seriousness of the matter, she immediately grabbed Gu Yings arm and forced him to turn his head to look at her.
Gu Ying, Im sorry. I was just influenced by this scene and told you on a whim. Please dont be angry.
This was the first time MO Ruyue had apologized to someone so humbly in both her previous and current lives. But if it was Gu Ying, she would not care at all.
Bing Er, Im sorry, I was too petty.
Gu Ying seemed to only be angry for a moment. After hearing MO Ruyues soft apology, he casually pulled MO Ruyue into his arms and began to apologize to her.
Actually, Ive hidden these words in my heart for a long time. In my previous life, Ive been looking for countless opportunities to confess to you at the most appropriate time, but I was afraid that you wouldnt ept it and that we would both lose thest person we could rely on for warmth.
Im a coward. I gave up this opportunity myself. Its not your fault.
Gu Ying wasnt angry at MO Ruyue. Instead, he was angry at himself.
There had been so many opportunities and so many choices, but he had missed them again and again. In the end, he had given this opportunity to MO Ruyue.
You idiot!
MO Ruyue said, both angry and amused, and casually thumped Gu Yings chest.
It was because of this hesitation and concern that they had missed the previous life. But fortunately, they would not miss it again in this life.
With the lonely beauty in his arms, he said all the words that he had kept in his heart for a long time. All the regrets and gloominess were swept away, and a smile gradually appeared in his eyes.
He was too rigid.
Being able to be together was more important than anything else, so why should she care who confessed first?
MO Ruyue snuggled in his arms and stole a nce at his expression. When she saw that his tense expression rxed, she also heaved a long sigh of relief.
She changed her mind and said to Gu Ying, Although I was the one who confessed to you first, you cant forget about the proposal. We dont have parents in this time and space, but we still have to have the ceremony!
Although she was a cold-blooded killer, deep down in her heart, she still had a sense of longing.
This longing was given to her by Gu Ying. Especially after the time and space had changed, her longing had be even stronger.
Alright, Ill agree to everything.
Gu Ying held MO Ruyue even tighter, and the two of them enjoyed the warmth of this moment together.
But I remember that youre still Lady Qin.
A hesitant voice came from above. The two of them remembered MO Ruyues current identity almost at the same time.
Thats right. I was originally nning to settle this matter after the new year, but now that the Qin Vige is gone, and even the county city is destroyed, I cant even go through the procedures to dissolve the marriage.
MO Ruyue said, feeling a headacheing on.
If she had known this would happen, she would have done this earlier.
However, she was not a half-immortal, so how could she have known earlier?
You wont be carrying this identity forever, will you? How am I supposed to marry you?
Gu Yings brows furrowed again.
When we leave this ce, well go to Old Master Bai and the Xiao family. Therell be a way. Now that there are so many casualties from the natural disaster, its toomon to lose ones identity. It shouldnt be a difficult thing to take advantage of this opportunity to re-do one.
MO Ruyue could only think of this method now, and the more she thought about it, the more she felt that this method was not bad.
The Bai family has been keeping a low profile, so theyre naturally not ordinary people. I think the Xiao family is more suitable.
Hearing Gu Yings words, MO Ruyue thought carefully and nodded. Youre right, the Xiao family is more suitable.
On the surface, the Xiao familys identity was that of a Prince with a different surname who guarded the southeast. For the Bai family to be on good terms with the Xiao family, they had to be at least a first-rank official in the Imperial Court.
Not to mention that there was another King with a different surname, the Ouyang family. In this case, the Bai familys identity was even more extraordinary.
With such a distinguished identity, he still needed to hide his strength and bide his time, and he had obviously been hidden for a long time. There must be some secret behind this that could not be spoken.
Compared to the Bai family that was hidden in the dark, the Xiao familys business behind the scenes was information gathering and the like. Other than having more identities as the white side than the blood tower, there was nothing more.
In this way, it wouldnt be difficult for the Xiao family to change her and the babies identities, let alone find MO Ruyues original identity.
Previously, the Madame of the Xiao family, Ye Youwei, came to visit Madam
Bai. Although she left early, I dont know where she went and whether she sessfully avoided this natural disaster.
Lets find the way tomorrow and return to the Qin Viges ruins. Let the babiese out and take a look, then well immediately move.
Mo Ruyue had an even more urgent thought now. She really couldnt wait a second longer.
She had never had such pretentious thoughts. Once she had confirmed her feelings, she would definitely use the fastest speed to achieve her wish.
Alright, Ill listen to you,
Gu Ying didnt ask for anything else now. Even if MO Ruyue suddenly turned against him and asked him to die, he would be willing to die, not to mention anything else.
As night fell, this was the only fire in the entire Treasure Valley. The milky way crossed the sky, and the sea of stars was brilliant, but it was not as warm as the human world.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying didnt go into the space to take out ingredients to cook. Instead, they took out high-energy fast food from their backpacks and simply heated it up to eat.
The night wind was extremely cold, but the two of them who were snuggling up to each other could not feel it at all.
Gu Ying
MO Ruyue was about to speak, but the twos expressions changed at the same time, and they took a defensive stance at the same time.
The howling night wind was mixed with an almost undetectable stench of blood, and there were almost no footsteps that were quickly approaching.
A wild beast?
The two of them looked at each other. Judging from the smell and the frequency of their footsteps, they were not humans. Could it be that some beast that was lucky enough to escape the natural disaster had smelled the scent of humans and came to hunt?
Whether it was a beast or a human, even if they could easily win, they would not let their guard down.
There was only one fire in the entire valley, and the light of the stars was not enough to light up the entire valley.
After being transformed by the spirit spring water, the darkness was no longer an obstacle to their vision. The surrounding scenery was clearly visible to them, and only the ck fog formed by the flules could not be prated by their vision.
A blurry ck shadow suddenly appeared on the cliff in the distance. It stood on the edge of the cliff and hesitated for a moment, as if it was looking in their direction. Then, it suddenly jumped down.
The ck shadow stepped on the rocks and trees on the cliff and leaped down. Every step was extremely urate. It didnt take much effort to reach the bottom of the valley from the top.
The more MO Ruyue looked at the figure running wildly, the more familiar he
It was a ck leopard that was almost twice the size of a normal leopard. When it ran, it was like a ck lightning bolt, and it pounced in front of her almost in an instant.
Of course, MO Ruyue and the other person would not be pounced on by the ck panther. In fact, they did not even move..
Chapter 399 - 399: One Person’s Strength Is Limited
Chapter 399: One Persons Strength Is Limited
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The ck panther stopped when it was less than ten meters away from them. It didnt show any intention to attack, and its eyes didnt even have a hunting
It was precisely because they had sensed that it had no intention of attacking that the two of them did not make any dodging movements.
Gu Ying, I keep feeling that this ck panther seems a little familiar.
Although MO Ruyue had a photographic memory, she was still a little uncertain.
She had once let a ck panther go, healed its wounds, and left some food for it. However, the ck panther was not that big.
I also find it familiar.
Gu Ying was also very familiar with the ck panther.
He had once been attacked by a ck panther like this, but he had been merciful and spared its life, releasing it.
Dont tell me you just happened to spare a ck panther? MO Ruyue suddenly had an idea and asked hesitantly.
What a coincidence, I did.
Gu Yings answer made the two of them speechless, and they looked at the ck panther again.
However, if this was the leopard that they had bypassed at the same time, its size was different.
Could it be that it had been exposed to radiation and had mutated?
Many of the meteorites that fell from the natural disaster had not beenpletely burned. When they fell to the ground, they brought along the alien fungi. It was hard to say that the rays from the meteorites would not affect animals.
Do I need to wear protective clothing?
Gu Ying saw the ck panther shake its head and squat down on the ground. It even tilted its head to look at them, its eyes alert and full of curiosity.
He turned his head and met MO Ruyues eyes. He finally confirmed the ck panthers identity.
Not for now. Lets take out the geiger reader and test it first. Otherwise, if we change into the protective suit, it may trigger its aggression.
With the skills of MO Ruyue and Gu Ying, it was impossible for them to be injured by the ck panther.
She just felt that such a tenacious life should not be obliterated for such ridiculous reasons, since it had survived such a natural disaster.
After he took out the reading device, the number on it stabilized, which proved that the radiation did not exceed the normal value.
After removing the possibility of radiation contamination, the two of them were even more rxed.
Especially when MO Ruyue dragged out half a frozen sheep from the freezer in the space, defrosted it quickly, and threw it to the ck panther.
It jumped up excitedly and grabbed the frozen sheep with its mouth. It theny on the ground and began to eat. It seemed that it had been hungry for a long time.
After the natural disaster, not only did humans suffer heavy casualties, but even the nts and animals on the mountain suffered a destructive blow. Especially when there was andslide the day before, it was even worse.
She didnt know how long it had not eaten to be so hungry.
MO Ruyue returned to the bonfire and sat down. She also pulled Gu Ying to sit down. Even though the two of them had their backs to the ck panther, they were no longer on guard.
When we were spraying medicine today, we had already walked around the valley a few times. After the entrance to Mirror Valley disappeared, we couldnt find any other way out.
If we want to leave tomorrow, other than the cave we came in from, we can only choose to climb up the cliff.
When she was killing the alien bacteria, she had carefully observed the entire valley of treasures. Other than the two holes, it was like a closed ring with no other path.
When this ck panther came down just now, it seemed to have a very smooth way up. Lets go and take a look at it tomorrow morning.
Fortunately, the ck panther came down from the cliff on the side of the valley and didnt walk on the opposite cliff. Otherwise, even if he climbed out, he would still have to take a long detour to return to the original location of the Qin Vige.
What I want to know the most now is how this ck panther survived the natural disaster, and what caused its body to expand so much.
If the giant wolf pack hadnt been kept into my medium and had luckily avoided the natural disaster, would their bodies have also expanded?
MO Ruyue turned back to look at the ck panther, who was gobbling down the food, and questions emerged in her heart.
Whether there were any other surviving animals in the mountains had also undergone a mutation.
She wasnt worried about their herbivorous actions, but more worried about the harm that wild beasts like tigers, leopards, and boars would bring to humans after they mutated.
Bing Er, youre overthinking. There are some things that even you and I cant do anything about. Even if you want to save them, how many can you save?
Gu Yings words were very realistic and cruel.
From the moment they predicted the urrence of natural disasters, they had been making choices.
Save some people and abandon more.
Even in the process of their rescue after the catastrophe, this choice was constantly being carried out.
After all, a persons strength was limited, and it was not easy to have a clear conscience.
I understand what you mean, and I dont have the desire to save the people of the world. I was just sighing.
MO Ruyue shook her head.
She had indeed changed too much. If it was her past self, she would not have considered these things at all.
The change that her babies brought to her was also the motivation that allowed her to escape the darkness and be born into the sun.
Alright, lets rest early. Well go rock climbing tomorrow morning and find a suitable path to leave this ce.
MO Ruyue looked at the ce where the entrance of the Mirror Valley used to be.
There was no need toe here anymore, so it was time to say goodbye.
The next morning, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying extinguished the bonfire and walked in the direction of the ck panther.
When they moved, the ck panther that had been lying behind them also got up and walked ahead of them. It looked back at them from time to time, as if it was leading the way.
Bing Er, this ck panther seems to want us to follow it first.
Gu Ying saw through the ck panthers intentions and so did MO Ruyue.
Dont doubt it, thats what its nning.
The ck panther had indeed followed the path they hade from and brought them to the ce where it had descended to the bottom of the valley.
Look, the rocks here can help us climb up.
MO Ruyue quickly saw a path up. For the ck panther with its strong jumping ability, it was as easy as walking on t ground, but for ordinary people, it was impossible to go up without the help of tools.
Of course, this wasnt a problem for MO Ruyue. After confirming the route, she and Gu Ying immediately started to climb up.
Gu Ying still took the lead and fastened the safety belt. After ensuring that nothing would go wrong, MO Ruyue continued to walk up.
The ck panther had already reached the top of the cliff and looked down at the two of them climbing up. When it was bored, it even climbed down and began to lick its ws to clean its face.
This cliff was more than fifty meters from the ground, but for MO Ruyue and Gu Ying, it would take them less than an hour to climb to the top.
MO Ruyue pulled out the safety buckle as she went up to minimize the traces of advanced technology left in this world.
It was also because of this that their climbing speed had slowed down.
MO Ruyue didnt turn around until she reached the top of the rock wall. The scene in front of her made her speechless for a long time.
The terrain here should have been elevated, and they could see the direction they came from. The entire cliff there had sunk down, and the mountain peak in the distance had been cut in half..
Chapter 400 - 400: Animals Have Gained Intelligence?
Chapter 400: Animals Have Gained Intelligence?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ying, from here.. I think I can see the location of the Qin Vige.
MO Ruyue pointed into the distance. Wasnt that mountain peak that had been cut off the mountain behind the Qin Vige?
How high was the elevation of the Treasure Valley for them to be able to see it from such a distance?
Yes, but it wont be easy for us to go around it.
Gu Ying wasnt like MO Ruyue, who could see the location of the Qin Vige at a nce. The first thing he did aftering up was to look around, his goal was to find a way out.
What he saw was that the way the cliff broke was very strange. It was as if the entire Treasure Valley had been dug out from the ground.
The fault zone that appeared around the entire valley meant that no matter how they went around it, they would still have to go back the way they came.
MO Ruyue also saw this scene and was instantly speechless.
A seemingly ridiculous thought shed through her mind, that this natural disaster might be targeting the Treasure Valley.
No, to be more precise, they wereing for Mirror Valley.
She told this thought to Gu Ying, but she didnt expect him to have the same thought.
Bing Er, no matter what, lets first find the most suitable ce to cross the other side.
Gu Ying had already seen three footholds, but he needed to use a high-powered telescope to see more clearly.
What should we do with this fellow? If we leave it here, it will probably starve to death. MO Ruyue turned to look at the ck panther.
Although she didnt know how it survived the natural disaster, looking at how it gobbled up the foodst night and the isted Ind from the top of the mountain, it was impossible to have any prey for it to hunt.
If you want to take it away, you have to put it in your space first. Otherwise, it will never cross the steel rope.
MO Ruyue was very clear about what Gu Ying was saying. However, it was different from bringing a pack of wolves into the space. They were already like life-and-death friends to her and Gu Ying, so they didnt have to worry about hurting the babies.
However, the two of them had only met the ck panther once, and it was wild and difficult to tame. Who knew what would happen if they were to send it into the space?
Even if the wolves would definitely risk their lives to protect the babies, she didnt want to see any casualties among the wolves. Of course, she would avoid them as much as possible.
Otherwise, Ill give it another dose of anesthetic and let it sleep. When it wakes up, itll be on the other side.
This wasnt a difficult problem and MO Ruyue quickly came up with a solution.
After using the high-powered telescope to observe, Gu Ying finally chose anding point in the southeast direction. However, if he wanted to go there, he
would have to make a detour of nearly 50 miles.
The road behind them was not smooth either, and it was very troublesome to walk.
The two of them didnt hesitate, picked up their backpacks, and prepared to leave.
The ck panther sat obediently at the side, its tail covering its front legs. It was like a huge cat looking at its master who was about to part. Do you want toe with us? Youll die if you stay here alone.
MO Ruyue walked over and reached out to the ck panther.
It first sniffed the air, then slowly moved closer to MO Ruyues hand and licked the back of it.
This was equivalent to acknowledging her status, and the next step would be much easier.
If I want to take you to the other side, Ill have to let you sleep first. Be good, and well be able to leave this ce when you wake up.
MO Ruyue immediately took out a cotton cloth dipped in anesthetic. Although the ck panther showed uneasiness and restlessness, it still trusted MO Ruyue. It just stayed where it was and did not leave.
After sessfully knocking out the ck panther, MO Ruyue sent it into the medium. At the same time, to prevent the giant wolves from identally hurting the unconscious ck panther, she temporarily put it in a smallpartment in the warehouse.
The dosage she used was just right, so it wouldnt hurt the ck panthers sense of touch and other nerves. Once they reached the other side, she would let it out and immediately wake it up with the antidote.
The return journey was very peaceful and there were almost no waves. Other than spending some time, they returned to the Qin Vige without any problems.
Im finally back. This journey was really not easy.
MO Ruyue looked at the familiar yet strange ce and didnt bring the children out immediately.
No matter how difficult it is, it has helped you and me to settle our thoughts.
Gu Ying originally didnt have a sense of belonging anywhere. Only by MO Ruyues side was his ultimate home, so when he spoke, his expression was very calm.
Thats right, as long as we give the babies this thought, we can really leave. MO Ruyue didnt want to keep the babies in the medium anymore. Although it was indeed very safe, it wasnt a ce where they could settle down for a long time.
What they needed to do now was to leave this ce and embark on a new journey.
The north, the capital, was indeed a good choice.
After MO Ruyue left the isted ind in the Treasure Valley, she released the ck panther from the space, removed the knockout powder on it, and prepared to release it back into the forest.
They didnt expect that the ck panther would just sit beside them and refuse to leave. After being driven away by the two several times, it even followed them from a distance.
Bing Er, I think this ck panther wants to follow us.
Gu Ying turned around a few times and finally stopped.
Why dont we take it with us and find another ce with dense forests and a lot of prey before letting it go?
Its not impossible, but we still have to let it get familiar with the babies and the giant wolves first.
MO Ruyue actually had the same thought.
It was fate, after all. Although this ck panther could not speak, it was extremely human.
The mountain forest here had already been destroyed to such an extent. It was likely that it was no longer a suitable habitat.
Although wild beasts had survival instincts and would probably find a new ce to live on their own, it had obviously made its choice now and would follow them.
She also didnt know why after transmigrating once, she and Gu Yings animal affinity was so good that it was explosive. The two ck horses and the wolf pack all took the initiative to approach them, and now even this ck panther was the same.
Her house wouldnt end up as a zoo, right?
Images uncontrobly shed through MO Ruyues mind.
On her left was a pack of wolves, on her right was a ck panther, and behind her was a pack of chickens, ducks, cattle, and sheep. There was even the cawing of peacocks.
She shook her head. If that was the case, San Bao and Tang Tang would be ecstatic, because they loved animals the most. They would wish that their home was a zoo.
If you want to follow me, you have to follow the rules. You cant hurt my family and friends, do you understand?
MO Ruyue made her decision and started to discuss the conditions with the ck panther in all seriousness.
The ck panther also nodded seriously!
Ying, I suspect Did this natural disaster give the surviving animals intelligence?
She had seen such human behavior from the ck wolf king before.
However, that was before the natural disaster. Could it be that she had put the giant wolves into her space and caused them to lose a chance to evolve?
Theres only this one case now. If the same situation is discovered in the future, the possibility of this happening might be even higher.
On the contrary, Gu Ying felt that this ck panther was already very unusual even before the natural disaster..
Chapter 401 - 401: They’re Also Running For Their Lives
Chapter 401: Theyre Also Running For Their Lives
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Okay, no matter what, lets bring Little vk into the space first and meet the babies.
Little ck? Isnt Little ck my horse?
Gu Ying raised an eyebrow.
They each had a ck horse. MO Ruyues horse had been named Big ck by Tang Tang, and his horse waster renamed Little ck.
Now, MO Ruyue was also bad at naming, and directly chose the name Little ck, which made him speechless.
Aiya, its all the same. You can also call it Little ck.
MO Ruyue waved her hand indifferently. It was just a form of address. What was so significant about it?
The ck panther at the side revealed an expression of disgust, even sticking its ears close to them, as if it didnt want to listen anymore.
The two people and the ck panther entered the space in the blink of an eye.
This time, the wolves were the first to react.
A few breaths after the back panther appeared, it immediately gathered from all directions and assumed a defensive stance.
Soon after, the babies also appeared.
They rushed over without a care, but when they saw the ck panther not far behind the two, they were stopped by Da Bao.
Mother, whats going on?
As the eldest brother, he naturally had to be the first to react to the abnormal situation.
Come, children, Ill introduce you to a new friend. Little Panther!
This name made Gu Ying unable to hold back hisughter. The corners of his lips rose up, but he tried hard to suppress the smile.
The ck panthers eyes drooped and he looked pitifully at MO Ruyue, as if he wanted to beg her to change its name to a slightly better one.
Mother, is Little Panther the new partner you found for us? Is it the same as ck Wolf and the others?
As expected, San Bao was the first to ept the situation, and he was already ready to stroke the big cat.
Yes, just like how Mother saved the wolf pack before, Little Panther met Mother and Uncle Gu Ying in the same way. Whats amazing is that weve all saved it in the same way.
When I came back this time, Mother found that the environment here has changed. If I leave it here, Im afraid it will starve to death, so Im going to take it with me.
Of course, Ill have to ask for your opinions. If youre afraid, Ill think of other ways.
Although MO Ruyue said this, she felt that since the babies could ept such a group of giant wolves, they would naturally not mind epting a ck panther.
I agree! I agree with both hands and feet!
San Bao jumped up, and it was as if there were springs under his feet as he jumped up and down.
I agree. Does Little Panther have nowhere to go and nothing to eat now? Poor thing!
Tang Tang was the second to agree. Her eyes and nose were red, and tears were about to fall from her eyes.
I dont have any objections.
Me neither.
Other than Da Bao, all the other babies expressed their opinions, and everyones attention was focused on Da Bao.
The wolf pack is here because Mother saved them and they saved Mother, but this panther Wont he suddenly be violent?
Da Bao had more to consider.
Big Brother, Mother just said that she also saved the panther. Look at how well-behaved Little Panther is, and its even wagging his tail!
Tang Tang pointed at the ck panther.
As expected, the ck panthers tail was constantly wagging, sweeping up the dust on the ground.
This was a typical dogs action. In order to please the babies, the ck panther was going all out.
This is the second time Ive saved the ck panther. Animals are more grateful than humans, so dont worry, Da Bao. i
MO Ruyue also promised.
Then I dont have any other thoughts. Anything is fine.
After Da Bao nodded, San Baos cheers grew even louder.
San Bao, go and call Grandpa Liu and Grandma Liu over. Let Little Panther get familiar with the smell.
This process was necessary. MO Ruyue had to let the ck panther get familiar with the people around her while she was present.
The Liu couple had already been waiting at the entrance of the courtyard, watching from a distance.
When he saw San Bao running over, he already knew what was going to happen.
Ruyue, are you going to take this panther in this time?
Aunt Liu went straight to the heart of the problem.
Thats right. Thats why Ive invited the two of you toe over and let it get familiar with the smell.
MO Ruyue looked at them and said, Wait, do you want to go out with us and take a look at the Qin Vige? What, can we go out now?
Aunt Liu was startled.
She knew that the county and the Qin Vige were gone. She also knew that MO Ruyue would take the babies to see the Qin Vige onest time before leaving.
She didnt expect it to be so fast.
Lets take a look. Perhaps after this, we wont have any more chances in the future.
Uncle Liu had always been a man of few words, and it was rare for him to take the initiative to say something. This time, he made the decision on behalf of
Aunt Liu.
Right, lets take a look.
Aunt Lius eyes also shed with a trace of destion.
They had lived in the Qin Vige for dozens of years and had lived half of their lives. Now that they knew that their hometown had been destroyed, how could they not feel sad?
Then lets go out together. After we see it, Ying and I will leave this ce. They had stayed here for a long time, and it was time to go.
Everyone stood in a circle, hand in hand. The scene before their eyes turned dark, and in the blink of an eye, they were already outside the space.
This This is the Qin Vige?
Aunt Liu looked at the scene in front of her and suddenly rubbed her eyes. Her voice trembled as she asked.
In front of her was a rocky beach piled up with countless boulders and mud. Countless dead branches and rotten leaves were mixed in, and she could even see the corpses of some animals.
As far as her eyes could see, it was a rocky beach like this. When MO Ruyue had returned, she could still see the wreckage of a few houses. After andslide, all the traces had beenpletely wiped out.
Yes, the ce we are standing at now is the entrance of the Qin Vige. The mountain behind us that only has half of its peak left is the mountain behind the vige.
MO Ruyues words were unusually calm and cruel. She was also trying to make the Liu couple and the babies ept this fact as soon as possible.
Mother, if you didnt escape with us at that time, we would have been buried here by now, right?
Compared to the other babies, Da Bao looked calmer. Although his voice was trembling uncontrobly, his expression was still calm.
Mother, is everyone else down here?
Er Bao, on the other hand, thought of the other vigers of the Qin Vige.
Although many people in the vige had looked down on them in the past, before their mother had changed for the better, there were still some vigers who pitied them and secretly gave them things like cornbread.
During that period of time, the five siblings had to rely on hundreds of families to survive, and they were more or less indebted to others.
Now that he saw such a tragic scene, he couldnt help but think about what the other vigers had encountered.
When I left, the vige chief had already sensed something. If Im not wrong, theyve also fled. However, its hard to say how far they can escape.
Thats right. The vige chief is an extremely astute person. I can see it too.
He has indeed sensed something.
Aunt Liu agreed with MO Ruyues words.
She couldnt forget the look in the vige chiefs eyes when the carriage left. That faint sense of fear and hesitation..
Chapter 402 - 402: Reconstruction After The Disaster
Chapter 402: Reconstruction After The Disaster
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Even when they heard this news, everyone knew very well that with the scale of this natural disaster, they had run at full speed without sleep and rest. They even forced MO Ruyue to enter the space to hide. How far could those people who didnt even have a carriage run?
Everyone tacitly avoided this topic.
No matter how sad they were, it had already happened, and no one had the ability to do anything.
Mother, lets go. I dont want to stay here anymore.
Tang Tang walked to MO Ruyues side and held her hand.
The smile on her face was gone, and she looked a lot more depressed.
After personally seeing the Qin Viges miserable state, she really couldnt be as happy as before.
Alright, lets go now, but you still have to return to that space. When we reach a safe ce, Mother will bring you out.
MO Ruyue had already anticipated that the babies emotions would be affected, but no matter what, they had still fulfilled theirst wishes.
In the future, the Qin Vige would only exist in their memories. They would carry this regret and start a new journey in life.
Soon, only MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were left.
The ck panther was also put into the space.
The babies were very epting of it, but the giant wolves had always been vignt and kept a distance from it. As expected, it was not easy for cats and dogs to get along.
They still had to rely on MO Ruyue and Gu Ying to walk the road to leave the Qin Vige.
After thendslide, the originally rugged mountain road became even more dangerous, and it was impossible to ride a horse out.
Fortunately, the two of them had enough energy and physical strength, and they enjoyed this kind of world where the two of them supported each other, so they treated it as a rxing journey and were not in a hurry to travel. It was another dayter when he returned to the official road outside the county.
But this time, the two were surprised to find that there were more people in the city.
When they left a few days ago, they had only met a doctor from Huichun Hall. There were not many people in the city. They didnt expect that when they came back, all kinds of tents had been set up.
Do you want to go over and take a look?
Gu Ying saw that MO Ruyue seemed to be hesitating and took the initiative to suggest.
Thats good. If its a survivor from the county, that would be great.
MO Ruyue immediately agreed.
She had seen many people in the county town in Huichun Hall. Even if she didnt care much about them, there was still a shallow fate between them.
The two of them immediately walked towards the tents.
Lady Qin, youre Lady Qin!
An old man who was sitting outside the tent and basking in the sun raised his head inadvertently and suddenly stood up in surprise and shouted.
His shout alerted the others.
People came out of the tents one after another. There were men and women, young and old. Almost all of them had yellow facial muscles and were thin with injuries.
MO Ruyue took a look and found them familiar. Without thinking, they should be the lucky survivors of the county.
She had a photographic memory. As long as it was a patient she had treated or someone she had briefly interacted with, she would recognize them the second time they met.
Lady Qin, are you also safe and sound? We havent had any news of you, so weve been worried.
Yeah, its great that youre fine.
Are you hungry? I still have a biscuit here. Although its a little rough, it can fill your stomach a little.
The people who surrounded them talked at once, their eyes full of sincere enthusiasm.
Im not hungry. Its good that everyone is fine?
MO Ruyue choked up for a moment.
She had thought that this group of people had surrounded her for some benefit.
After all, she was a well-known divine doctor, and she looked clean and tidy. Herplexion was also excellent, at least much better than the refugees.
They should have at least begged her to help them, but all they asked was for her safety.
Even the slightest bit of false affection could not escape MO Ruyues eyes.
But why were their eyes filled with sincerity?
How did you all survive that natural disaster? Where have you been these days? MO Ruyue couldnt help but ask.
The doctor from before had just happened to be out of the city on a patrol and was driving a carriage, so he had survived.
The county city was also almostpletely destroyed. How did these people survive the natural disaster when they were caught off guard?
Some of us went to visit rtives, and some happened to go down to the basement to get things. Anyway, God took pity on us and left us alive.
The gathered escapees had already stayed here for a few days and had already discussed this question with each other. At this time, one person answered MO Ruyues question.
Lady Qin, you also went to the outer city for a consultation, right? Its really great to be able to escape this natural disaster.
Perhaps it was because the natural disaster was too tragic that no one was willing to talk too much about it, so the topic was quickly shifted to MO Ruyue.
Yes, I came back this time to see if theres anything I can help with.
MO Ruyue was very d that she had taken out the carriage from her interspace when she arrived at the county town. It was filled with a batch of grain and herbs.
She had nned to save another group of people on the way north, but she didnt expect these supplies toe in handy.
Do you n to stay here or go to another city and start over?
MO Ruyue couldnt bear to leave these people here, but it also depended on their own opinion.
This is the root. Weve been living here our whole lives. Who would be willing to leave our home unless its ast resort?
Yeah, but this ce is in ruins now. We dont even have anything to eat or drink. How long can west?
But where can we go? Its a few dozen miles to the nearest city, and we havent seen the end of how far this disaster has affected us.
The survivors had also thought about this, but they had been hungry for several days and were injured. They didnt know how many more days they could survive, let alone imagine the future.
I met Doctor Li from Huichun Hall before. He was also seriously injured, but he survived because he had medicine and dry food in the car when the natural disaster happened.
I sent him to a town some distance away from here. Fortunately, it was not attacked by natural disasters.
If you want to go, Ill send you there. After all, post-disaster reconstruction requires manpower.
MO Ruyue thought of Doctor Lis fate. If he, who was severely burned, could be epted, then these people in rtively better conditions should have no problem.
Lady Qin, are you telling the truth? Is there really such a ce?
An uncle said excitedly.
He was in the prime of his life, but he had miraculously suffered some superficial injuries. Now, he had almost recovered.
If there was someone who had the highest chance of surviving, it was him.
Yes, Ive also brought some food and herbs. They can temporarily solve your food problem and can also treat your injuries. But I wont stay for long, so let me know when youve thought about it.
MO Ruyues words were like adding water to a pot of hot oil, and everyone instantly exploded.
At first, they had only seen MO Ruyue and subconsciously had a backbone and hope. They didnt expect that she really had life-saving supplies and was willing to use those on them..
Chapter 403 - 403: Casting Pearls Before Swine
Chapter 403: Casting Pearls Before Swine
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Lady Qin, this life-saving grace, we cant repay it even if we work like cows and horses!
Thats right, God left us a life and was ready to take it back at any time. I didnt expect Lady Qin to be a life-saving Bodhisattva, leaving us with this
Everyone was moved to tears by MO Ruyues gratitude and repeatedly thanked her.
Come, Xiao Bao, quickly kneel down and kowtow to Lady Qin, thank her for saving your life!
There were also women with children who directly pulled their children to kneel in front of MO Ruyue, wanting to kowtow and thank her for her kindness.
Everyone in the county knew that Lady Qin had excellent medical skills, but she was most afraid of trouble. She almost would not take the initiative to meddle in other peoples affairs.
But now, she was carrying all of them on her shoulders and was prepared to give them more hope.
Dont, dont thank me like this. I cant afford it.
MO Ruyue immediately stopped the woman and child. This was not her intention to help them.
Some people also noticed the man who had been standing behind MO Ruyue. Although his face was covered by half a silver mask and they couldnt see his face clearly, his tall and elegant figure made people unable to look away.
No one knew what kind of rtionship he had with MO Ruyue. No one dared to ask what kind of rtionship they had.
Even if someone was secretly wondering if the two of them had a very ambiguous rtionship, they would definitely not dare to ask at this time.
So what if he was?
Lady Qin was a widow, and no one could force her to not remarry, so it was not strange that a man didnt mind her bringing five children with her.
Everyone knew that Lady Qins medical skills were exquisite and superb, and she had the ability to make a lot of money every day. She was also young and beautiful, so it was simply too easy to find a more outstanding second spring.
Gu Ying had long noticed that the others were looking at him differently, but he didnt take it to heart.
As long as he nced over, those gazes would subconsciously turn away, not daring to meet his gaze.
Lady Qin, weve all thought it through. Well go to that town with you. As long as we can survive, even if we have to eat tree bark and grass roots, well be able to survive.
It was still the same uncle from before. After discussing with all the survivors, he acted as a representative to talk to MO Ruyue.
Everyone unanimously chose to leave. No one wanted to stay in this hopeless ce and bitterly wait for death toe.
Alright, then lets prepare to cook Youll only have strength after eating. Those who are injured or sick,e to me for treatment ording to the severity of their injuries.
MO Ruyue began tomand swiftly and decisively.
The majority of the survivors were male, and their natural gender advantage made it easier for them to survive in the face of natural disasters.
So now, the men were the ones who carried the food down from the truck and started cooking.
The women, elderly, and children were given priority to receive treatment. Those who were not too seriously injured would help the men or simply teach them how to cook.
Everyone worked together and divided the work, so the efficiency was very
At this time, in order to let the injured recover as soon as possible, MO Ruyue used the spirit spring water in the medium after weighing the pros and cons.
Although the dosage was not much, it was enough for them to quickly heal their internal and external injuries and recover their physical strength. It wouldy a solid foundation for them to be epted by the new town in the future.
MO Ruyue stayed in this tent area for five days, and the food that was prepared by evening was all gone.
It was time to move.
There were only a few dozen people who survived in the entire county. Compared to therge number of refugees, it was considered a very small scale.
But it wasnt easy to bring these dozens of people with her.
MO Ruyue only had one carriage, and even if the most seriously injured person were to ride in it, it could only amodate four or five people.
She and Gu Ying even gave up their two ck horses and walked on foot.
Even so, the teams speed was still very slow.
Fortunately, after a few days of treatment with the spirit spring water, many of the men in the team recovered the fastest. They also tried to find wood and other things to make some stretchers and trailers, which could be considered as more means of transportation.
Last time, it was Gu Ying who had driven the carriage to send Doctor Li off. For the 50-mile distance, he had to take care of his health and slowly walk for a long time.
With the long queue and those who had yet to recover from their injuries, it was impossible for them to make it in a day.
MO Ruyue had the foresight to reserve some grain and make it into longsting dry food, which just happened toe in handy at this time.
During the lunch break, MO Ruyue brought two women to distribute dry food to everyone. At the same time, she said to them, Save your food. We still have dozens of miles to go. At this speed, we have to eat at least three meals on the way.
She estimated that they would arrive around this time the next day, so she had to save the remaining dry food for three meals.
Of course, MO Ruyue had enough supplies in her space, but she would not take them out for them to use without limit. Moreover, the survivors had been moving food and medicine from the carriages these days, so they knew what was inside.
She had conjured another batch of supplies out of thin air. Even if she had done these people a favor, it was hard to guarantee that they would not leak the secret under any circumstances.
Lady Qin, dont worry. Its fine even if we dont eat anything for the next three meals. Now that I have something to look forward to, I dont care about starving for a meal or two.
Now, these survivors all treated MO Ruyue as a living Buddha and listened to her every word.
The sun was strong at noon, so the rest time was slightly extended. It was not until an hourter that everyone set off again.
The night fell earl. Mo Ruvue also called for the troops to stop and start
camping.
They were still twenty miles away from the small town, and they would be able to reach it by noon the next day.
They could still see the ruins after the disaster, which made all the survivors feel a lingering fear. They were secretly d that they had met MO Ruyue.
Otherwise, if they were to drag their injured, hungry, and weak bodies to walk more than 50 miles, who knew how many people would fall on the road and never reach their destination again?
MO Ruyue sat by the bonfire, using the stone pot that Gu Ying had made for her to cook porridge.
Gu Ying, that sword of yours that can cut through iron as if it were mud has fallen into my hands. Its like a pearl cast in the dark.
As she threw the dried food into the pot, she used chopsticks made of wooden sticks topletely dissolve the dried food in water.
It was already early spring, but the power of the cold ofte spring could not be underestimated.
To be able to drink a mouthful of warm porridge in the cold night wind was simply an immortal-like enjoyment.
I only made this pot. You gave the pot to someone else and left nothing for yourself.
Originally, MO Ruyue could also eat with the survivors, but she wanted the survivors to rx and not be so restrained. In the end, she had to choose to cook alone.
When she was around, they would treat her with respect and speak to her with caution. This was not the result MO Ruyue wanted.
Alright, well send them to the small town tomorrow afternoon and settle them down. Then, we can continue on our way.
MO Ruyue could only send them here. How they wanted to live the rest of their lives was up to them.
Come, try the porridge I made. Although I didnt put any special seasoning, it still tastes good.
She scooped up a spoonful of porridge, blew on it slightly, and brought it to Gu Yings mouth. Her eyes were filled with yfulness and slyness.
Its delicious. Even if you dont put anything in your cooking, itll still be the
Gu Ying had always been full of praise for MO Ruyue..
Chapter 404 - 404: Where To Find Wild Vegetables
Chapter 404: Where To Find Wild Vegetables
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The two figures snuggled up in front of the bonfire fell into the eyes of the survivors not far away, and finally confirmed their initial guess.
As expected, I thought they were a couple, and its true.
Aiya, Lady Qin is so young and beautiful, and she has medical skills. Its normal for young men to follow her.
Thats right. She has been a widow for many years, and has taken good care of her five babies who have no blood rtionship with me. She has already done her best. Do you want her to be a widow for the rest of her life?
Yes, yes, lets just be happy to see it happen.
They discussed in low voices, afraid that their words would be heard by MO Ruyue and Gu Ying.
Little did they know that the five senses of the two people were extremely sensitive. Even if they were speaking softly from a distance of tens of meters, they could still hear it clearly.
If it wasnt for the fact that Im their lifesaver, would they still be so happy to see our ne to fruition?
Although MO Ruyue believed that when they first met, these peoples wish for her to be safe was sincere, it was not so easy to ept the fact that a widow had to remarry.
After all, this was a feudal society with conservative ideas. In the eyes of many people, women should be chaste after marriage.
It wasnt impossible to remarry, but people would still gossip behind her back and poke at her back.
Why are you thinking about this? At least theyre giving you their blessings now. Thats enough.
Gu Ying reached out and stroked MO Ruyues hair. He didnt want to think about those meaningless things. He only wanted to give MO Ruyue a grand wedding after everything settled down.
He had already loved her for two lifetimes, and he wanted to continue loving her for all of them.
Youre right, its pointless to think about these things. Even if everyone doesnt wish us well, do you think well be separated because of this? Thats impossible!
MO Ruyue also felt that what she had just said was ridiculous. When did she be so sentimental? It was always easy for her to be disturbed by unnecessary thoughts.
Bing Er, I feel that youre more alive now.
Gu Ying looked at MO Ruyues eyes and suddenly blurted out. He felt that something was wrong and quickly exined, Im not saying that you werent alive before, I just
His desperate attempt to exin made MO Ruyueugh. She raised her hand and pinched his cheek.
I also feel that Im more like a human now, a real human.
Before noon the next day, the group finally arrived at the small town.
However, the team stopped at a distance and did not enter the city directly.
Bing Er, do you want me to go and check the situation? Gu Ying walked over and said to MO Ruyue.
The gate of the small city in the distance was tightly shut. Many people were gathered outside the city. Judging from their ragged clothes, they should have fled here from other ces.
However, for some unknown reason, they had been rejected.
The small city must be overwhelmed. It was notrge in the first ce. Now that so many disaster escapees have been amodated, food is definitely not enough.
When MO Ruyue saw this scene, she immediately guessed the most likely reason.
If those people were rejected at the door, then the people she brought would have the same result.
Lets retreat further away and not call those people over.
Mo Ruyue waved her hand, and the survivors slowly retreated, trying not to make too much noise.
The group of people gathered at the city gate were dressed in ragged clothes, their faces yellow and thin. One look and it was clear that they had been hungry for a long time and had been tortured. If they discovered that there were people with goodplexions here, it was difficult to guarantee that they would not have evil thoughts.
MO Ruyue naturally wasnt afraid of those disaster victims. She just didnt want to cause trouble.
The marching line was very long. When the people at the back saw the people in front turn and retreat, they were not in a hurry to ask. Instead, they chose to follow them and retreat first, then ask what had happened.
They retreated all the way to a small hill at the back, where they could avoid the wind and block their vision. Only then did they stop to rest.
Whats wrong? Were almost there. Why did you stop?
Yeah, what happened?
I dont know. I just saw the one in front turn around, so I turned around.
Everyone was whispering to each other. Except for the survivors in front who saw the situation outside the city gate, the others were confused.
Everyone, be quiet. We just saw that the small city has already closed its gates and shut many of the victims outside.
The uncle who was in the best physical condition among the survivors was called Deng Feng. He had been the backbone of the survivor team for the past few days and had been involved in all matters.
Just now, he had been following behind MO Ruyue, so he had clearly seen the situation outside the town.
What? Were not allowed to enter the city? Then what should we do? We dont have any more food, we cant just eat dirt!
A middle-aged woman in her forties shouted in a hurry. Her voice was a little too loud, and her mouth was immediately covered by the people next to her.
Dont scream, be careful not to attract the disaster victims. You dont know, they must have been starving for a long time, who knows what will happen.
They had also suffered before and knew that people were irrational when they were crazy from hunger, so they quickly and clearly understood MO Ruyues intention for them to retreat and hide in the mountain.
But weve already finished thest bit of food at noon. Are we going to eat dirt next?
Although the middle-aged woman had lowered her voice, it still carried a heavy sobbing tone.
She was really scared of hunger.
It was not easy for her to live a few days of peace, and she thought that she would be able to settle down in the future. Who knew that there would be waves again?
The others also had the same idea, but they didnt say it out loud. After using the middle-aged womans mouth to express their true intentions, they couldnt help but look at MO Ruyue with anticipation.
Its impossible for Lady Qin to apany us for a lifetime, so why do we always count on her?
Deng Feng could not stand it anymore.
During this period of time, the food they ate and the herbs they used were all provided by MO Ruyue for free. He didnt have any intention of making them work like cows and horses in return.
However, it had only been a few days, and they had be dependent on Lady Qin for everything. Did she owe them?
The survivors blushed at Deng Fengs words and lowered their heads, too embarrassed to look at MO Ruyue.
How about this? Lets split into several groups and go in different directions to see if we can get some wild vegetables or the like.
A white-haired old man took the initiative to step forward and made a suggestion.
Youve seen it for yourself along the way. Theres almost no grass growing here, so where are we going to find wild vegetables?
It was still the same middle-aged woman who had beenining non-stop. Even though people offered her steps one after another, she seemed to not understand at all and continued toin.
MO Ruyue had been watching coldly from the side. When she heard this, her eyes became a little cold.
The scope of this natural disaster was too wide. Even if they were lucky enough to survive, their lives would be very difficult in the future. She thought that these survivors should have been aware of this.
She didnt expect that she had overestimated some people. It had only been a few days and she had already exposed her true nature..
Chapter 405 - 405: A Second Chance
Chapter 405: A Second Chance
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
If I dont stay by your side and do everything for you, you wont be able to
MO Ruyue finally spoke. Although her words were simple, they were unusually sharp.
No, I didnt mean it that way, but Lady Qin, youll save people to the end and send Buddha to the west. At least show us a way to continue living!
We cant get into the base now, and theres no better ce nearby. We dont even have any food to eat. Isnt the only thing waiting for us in the end still death?
The middle-aged woman was a little guilty at first, so her voice was very soft.
However, as she spoke, it was as if she had gained confidence, and her voice and expression became aggressive.
So, ording to what you said, I should have left you to your own devices from the very beginning so that you could die and reincarnate as soon as possible, right?
MO Ruyue still only said one sentence, but this sentence was ten times heavier than before.
If I hadnt meddled and given you food and medicine, you would have been reincarnated by now. I blocked your path of reincarnation, so shouldnt I apologize to you?
Y -youre cursing me?
The middle-aged womans face turned purple as she choked on MO Ruyues words and rolled her eyes.
She tried to defend herself, but she couldnt find a more powerful reason.
Curse? Isnt that what youre thinking?
Because I saved you, so I have to be responsible to the end. Ill find you a safe and suitable ce to stay, take care of your daily needs, and let you live without any worries.
If I didnt do that, I might as well not have saved you in the first ce, right? This time, it was MO Ruyues turn to be aggressive.
As she spoke, her eyes swept across the others, trying to see how many people had the same idea as the middle-aged woman.
No one could make eye contact with her for more than two seconds, and they lowered their heads almost immediately upon contact.
Some people felt guilty, while others felt ashamed.
No one had thought that just by not being able to enter the city gates for the time being, the hidden conflict would be triggered.
Lady Qin, you said before that you would leave after sending us to the ce. Now that we have arrived, you should go. Deng Feng suddenly said to MO Ruyue.
He wasnt trying to persuade her, but asking her to leave.
Youve already done a lot for us, but Im really sorry for dragging down your schedule.
His words allowed the middle-aged woman to find a breakthrough point. She immediately shifted her focus and attacked him.
What do you mean by that? Do you really think youre the leader of our group? I think youre just trying to curry favor with Lady Qin so that shell look up to you and take you away!
Enough, shut up!
Her shrew-like behavior finally made more people unable to stand it anymore, and they all stood up and began to criticize her.
Dont go too far, its us who owe Lady Qin a great favor, not her who owes us!
Thats right, they didnt expect you to be grateful, but youre using them of not helping you to the end? Dont you have any shame!
Just look at yourself, dont bring us all along. We all dont know how to be grateful to Lady Qin, not like you, who has no sense of shame.
Among the people who stood up to criticize the middle-aged woman, there were also people who had the same thoughts as her, but they didnt dare to reveal their true thoughts at this time.
Dont pretend to be so high and mighty. Do you really think that no one knows what youre thinking?
Have you all never thought of letting Lady Qiny out a way out for you, so that you can live without any worries? Now, all of you are pretending to be decent. Dont you have any shame?
Seeing this, the middle-aged woman also went all out.
Anyway, she had alreadypletely offended MO Ruyue and there was no turning back.
She might as well curse to her hearts content.
This time, she hadpletely pushed everyone to the opposite side. Almost no one was willing to stand beside her anymore, and they all kept a distance from her.
You can scold her however you want, but we wont trouble Lady Qin anymore. We all have hands and feet, and weve been well fed for so many days, yet you still want to me others for taking responsibility. You know whos shameless.
Deng Feng didnt want to be entangled with this woman anymore. He didnt want Lady Qin to be disappointed in all of them because of this one person.
Alright, since thats the case, Ill be leaving.
MO Ruyue suddenly agreed with Deng Fengs words and expressed that she was leaving.
She really did turn around to clean up the carriage. It seemed like she wasnt just saying it.
A few seriously injured people who were resting in the carriage heard the conversation outside and took the initiative to open the carriage door, ready to return the carriage to MO Ruyue.
They didnt have the face to continue upying the carriage. Other than giving up the carriage, there seemed to be nothing else they could do.
Hmph, Im afraid youve wanted to get rid of us for a long time. Why are you only putting on an act now?
The middle-aged woman continued to curse, but this time, no one paid attention to her. Instead, they let her do whatever she wanted.
Everything that MO Ruyue could leave for the survivors had been left behind. Of course, the carriage and horses had to be taken away. What was left was nothing more than some bedding and utensils, but there was no dry food at all.
Lady Qin, I hope that you and this young master will have a safe journey. We will never forget your great kindness. In the future, even if we have to work like cows and horses, we will definitely return it.
Deng Feng cupped his fists and saluted MO Ruyue and the other man. He didnt expect that their good intentions would be exchanged for such an ending. If it were him, he would also be bitterly disappointed.
Goodbye.
MO Ruyue only replied with three short words before returning to the carriage. Gu Ying drove the carriage away.
It was obvious that she was really hurt, which was why she left so quickly.
There was another exit in this Mountain Valley. Gu Ying did not return the way he came, but instead went straight for the other exit.
The two of them went to the other side where the survivors couldnt see them before they stopped.
Bing Er, do you still n to help them to the end? Gu Ying heard the sound of the door behind him and turned to MO Ruyue, who was walking out of the carriage.
A stinky fish makes a pot of soup. At least not everyone is like her. Thats enough.
MO Ruyue didnt have the idea of leaving from the beginning. Although there were some survivors who had the same idea as the middle-aged woman, they at least knew how to keep their mouths shut.
It was worth a second chance.
She had painstakingly saved that group of people not because she wanted to let them face the threat of death again, but because of those who were truly grateful, she would not leave them alone.
Then Ill go into the city and see whats going on. Its not a good idea to just guess from the outside.
With Gu Yings skills, it was a piece of cake to sneak into the city without a sound.
Ill monitor the movements of the refugees.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying split up the work and quickly decided on what they needed to do.
After the carriage was put into her interspace, she immediately made a detour and headed toward the small town in the distance..
Chapter 406 - 406: Instigating The People To Cause Trouble
Chapter 406: Instigating The People To Cause Trouble
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
In the citys medical center, Doctor Li looked at the patient who came to seek treatment and sighed in embarrassment.
Its not that I dont want to treat everyone, but were running out of herbs. How can I treat them without medicine?
Because he knew medicine, he was able to be epted by the small city and settled in the Medical Hall to treat the people in the city.
The days had been rtively peaceful, but as more and more disaster victims poured in, the small city began to be overwhelmed.
The animals in the mountains and forests outside the city had all run away. In the winter, everything was in a deste state. Even wild vegetables that could fill ones stomach were difficult to find. Relying only on the stored food in the city was not enough to support so many peoples food and clothing.
To make matters worse, there were arge number of injured and sick people among the victims, and they were also rapidly consuming the herbal reserves in the medical center.
When the first case of death due to ack of medicine appeared, Doctor Li had no choice but to report it to the county government. At the same time, he proposed to temporarily seal the city gates.
However, the victims who had already entered the city could not be driven out. There were still people waiting outside the medical center every day, only asking for medicine to relieve their pain.
Doctor Lis words didnt have any effect. Instead, it caused even louderints and pleas.
Doctor Li, youre also a refugee from the outside Cant you think of a way on ount of the fact that weve been through this together?
Yes, how can there be no herbs in this clinic? You usually prepare a lot of them. Or do you not want to let us use them at all?
There was a troublesome instigator among this group of people who came to seek medical treatment. Although his injuries were not very serious, he was always there to ask for medicine.
Doctor Li had even heard people say that this person had secretly sold the medicinal herbs he had obtained at a high price and made a fortune in secret.
Of course, he might not be earning money. The most important hard currency now was food.
Im just a doctor, not a God. Do you think I can conjure herbs out of thin air for you?
Doctor Li said, extremely dissatisfied.
It wasnt that he didnt have the idea of getting those herbs, but the county government of the small town kept a close eye on these life-saving supplies, so he really didnt dare tomit a crime at this time.
As for the guy who incited the patients to make trouble and force the medicine, he might have already been targeted by the county government and could be in trouble at any time. He was now waiting to see what would happen to that guy.
Doctor Li, thest time we came here, we saw that there were still a lot of medicines in the medicine box. Now that the city gate is closed, and there are no new patientsing in, it cant be that they ran out of medicine in just two days, right?
If you cant bring out the medicine today, well report you to the county magistrate!
The instigator was already very familiar with this kind of threatening technique. He was sure that Doctor Li didnt want to cause trouble.
Doctor Li himself was covered in burns and was suspected of secretly keeping the herbs for his own use. He didnt dare to let the county magistrate receive any reports about him.
This Even if there arent any new patientsing to seek medical treatment, you people stille every few days. No matter how many herbs we have, it wont be enough!
It wasnt the first time Doctor Li had been threatened with this excuse. In the past) when the stock of herbs was still enough, he had no reason to refuse, but now that the stock was about to be used up, where was he going to find more herbs?
The situation in the medical hall was so chaotic, but the situation in the rice shop was even worse.
The front and back doors were guarded by bailiffs. From time to time, there were also people patrolling along the base of the wall to prevent anyone from climbing over the wall to steal the grain.
Now, the entire city had begun to implement food rationing. A porridge shed had been set up in front of the rice store, and a limited bowl of porridge and two coarse rice cornbread were provided every day.
Everyone in the city had this standard, even the county magistrate was no exception.
However, even if the supply was reduced to the minimum, it still could notst any longer. In another half a month, the surplus food in the city would be exhausted.
Originally, this news had been tightly sealed, but someone had identally leaked it out. Now, countless people had gathered at the entrance of the rice shop, moring to get to the bottom of it.
This is pure nonsense. The rice store in the city has enough food tost for three years. How can it be out of food in such a short time?
No matter who is spreading rumors to shake the peoples hearts at this time, they will be severely punished once they are caught!
The one who stood out to refute the rumors was Advisor Hu of the county office, but the county minister had gone somewhere and did not show his face at all.
Advisor Hu, at least let us see the grain in the rice store. If we dont see it with our own eyes, we cant be at ease!
Someone in the crowd shouted, and it immediately caused a lot of people to echo.
Advisor Hu looked in the direction of the voice, but he only saw a crowd of people. He couldnt tell who had just spoken.
What? You dont even believe the words of the officials?
Advisor Hu narrowed his eyes and scanned the crowd, trying to find the instigator.
It was not easy to appease the peoples hearts. Sometimes, when people were persuaded after much effort, the instigators could make all their previous efforts go down the drain with a few words.
Advisor Hu, its not that we dont believe the officials words. Its just that if theres sufficient food in the city, isnt one meal a day too little?
Its almost spring now, so we can start plowing the field. But if we cant even eat enough, how can we have the strength to work?
These words were reasonable, and Advisor Hu could not refute them for a moment.
However, since he was able to be a grand master, his brains reaction speed was also very fast.
Were trying to save as much food as possible now to ensure that everyone wont go hungry when the spring plowing begins. Although theres enough food in the rice shop, dont forget that we have a lot of new people in the city.
Theres still a group of disaster victims waiting outside the city to enter. If they dont disperse, are we not going to work? When the poption increases, what will we do if we run out of food?
When Adviosr Hu said this, the hearts of themoners wavered again.
It made sense. It seemed that they were indeed a little impetuous toe and question him so aggressively.
Advisor Hu, we just want to take a look at the food. Its not like were asking to eat it right away. Do you think that a look will reduce the food?
The instigating voice from earlier came again, and Advisor Hu immediately fixed his eyes on one spot.
However, everyone in the crowd had a confused expression on their faces, and
it was impossible to tell who had just spoken.
In the blink of an eye, that person had perfectly hidden himself among the crowd.
Advisor Hu had a bad feeling. This person instigating the people to cause trouble was definitely an old hand.
Enough! You even dare to question the words of the government, are you trying to rebel? The governments decision is for you to obey, not for you to doubt it out of nothing!
If anyone has nothing better to do and is already thinking of ways to cause trouble, then from now on, they will be deprived of the right to receive food.. For more serious cases, they will be directly sent to prison!
Chapter 407 - 407: The Survivors Have Been Discovered?
Chapter 407: The Survivors Have Been Discovered?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The moment he showed his might, themoners blocking the gate immediately quieted down.
Now was a special period after the natural disaster. They should have used torture. Otherwise, if there were any hidden dangers, they would bepletely uncontroble when the people started to riot.
Advisor Hu also made a prompt decision. Once he discovered this sign, he decisively responded.
Not being allowed to eat was the greatest punishment in this period of time, even more daunting than going to jail.
They could only eat one meal a day, and it was not guaranteed that they would be full. If they did not even have the right to eat this meal, they would have to starve for the whole day.
Seeing that spring was about toe, the county minister had already said that the city did not keep idle people. Everyone had to go out and work hard for the autumn food.
Without strength, one couldnt work. By the time the autumn harvest arrived, the amount of food would be less than others. Then how would they survive the next winter?
Everyone had a scale in their hearts. Although they would be incited for a moment, they would immediately wake up when they considered the real problem.
Seeing that no one mentioned the matter of looking at the surplus grain again, Advisor Hus expression did not change, but he was actually secretly relieved.
However, the news of theck of food could not be hidden for long. In at most ten days, everyone would slowly realize this situation.
When the time came, it would be easy to catch and throw them into jail, but the problem of food would still have to be solved.
However, if there was nothing to eat, wouldnt there be a tragedy of everyone eating each other?
So, the surplus grain in the city cantst long, and the herbs are running out?
When MO Ruyue heard the news that Gu Ying brought back, her brows immediately furrowed tightly.
When they saw the city gate being sealed, they had already thought of this reason. Now that they had confirmed this reason, it made MO Ruyue feel that it was a little more troublesome.
There was indeed an endless amount of food and herbs in her space.
No matter what kind of nt it was, as long as it was nted on the soil in the space, it would start to grow wildly.
MO Ruyue only needed toe in at a fixed time to harvest a batch of mature grain, and the space would automatically process and store the grain ording to her wishes.
The infinite space also allowed MO Ruyue to never worry about not having enough space to store food. The preservation time of the space also allowed the old grain to be stored for at least ten years without mold.
It was the same for herbs. After she had stored all the rare herbs in the
Treasure Valley in her bag, the herbs in her space had also grown crazily.
If it wasnt for MO Ruyues strict control, who knew where it would have grown to now.
So she didnt have to worry about ack of food and herbs, but the problem was, after such a natural disaster, where could she find a ce to extract food and herbs inrge quantities?
Even if MO Ruyue wanted to help these survivors, she didnt have the intention of getting Gu Ying and herself involved.
Bing Er, I think you shouldnt get involved in this matter. The risk of your realm being exposed is too high, and it will be very serious.
Gu Ying had always supported MO Ruyue unconditionally, but this time, he opposed it from the start.
After a natural disaster, the Imperial Court would also organize corresponding disaster relief operations. However, food and medicinal herbs were usually controlled resources. In the face of such a massive disaster, they would be firmly controlled by the Imperial Court.
MO Ruyues act of conjuring arge amount of food and herbs out of thin air might not be disclosed yet, but what if the victims of the disaster came in the future?
There would definitely be people who would spread the news, and things would go out of control.
Gu Ying didnt want MO Ruyue to face such danger and predicament.
What if we only need to solve a small amount of food and herbs? Even if some adults dont deserve sympathy, the children are innocent. Gu Ying, you should know that if theres a famine, the end will be even worse.
MO Ruyue couldnt bear to see the children suffer, let alone let them encounter more tragic things.
She wasnt a saint who was blinded by light, but now that she had her babies, she was no longer the cold-blooded and ruthless top-tier assassin she used to be, and she could no longer look down on everything without moving.
If we can find a suitable ce to store grains and herbs in the shortest time possible, maybe we can do this.
Gu Ying and MO Ruyues minds were already connected. After careful consideration, they immediately thought of a way.
The remaining food in the city canst for half a month, but the people outside cant. The escapees outside the city are starving. If they find those survivors, what do you think will happen?
MO Ruyue had originally wanted to take it slow, but it seemed that time really couldnt wait for anyone.
Where else can we take them now? Its mainly because theirplexions arepletely different from ordinary disaster victims. One look and you can tell that theyve been eating, drinking, and resting well. At this time, human nature cant stand the test.
In their previous lives, Gu Ying and MO Ruyue had been to small countries that were gued by natural disasters and chaos to carry out missions. They had seen all kinds of human tragedy.
Therefore, they knew very well that the group of survivors they had brought here might be a group of fat sheep in the eyes of other disaster victims, or just pure jealousy would be enough to bring disaster to them.
No, lets go back now, even if its to bring them further away. Besides, weve been gone for so long, so even if we were to conjure up some more food and herbs out of thin air, their suspicions wouldnt be that strong.
MO Ruyue made a prompt decision and immediately let the carriage out again.
However, before she returned to meet up with the survivors, she still let Gu Ying drive the carriage for a long distance to create a rutted mark. After confirming that the loophole had been covered up perfectly, she drove the carriage back to their separate ces.
When they reached the middle of the valley, their expressions suddenly changed. Gu Yingshed out with his whip, and the carriage immediately sped up.
From the sound of the wind, they heard screams.
Could it be that the survivors had been discovered in less than a day?
A short section of the road passed in a sh. When they turned around the foot of the mountain, the scene in front of them made their hearts sink.
It was unknown when the disaster victims outside the city had surrounded the survivors. Not only had they blocked the mountain pass, but they had also cut off their escape routes.
The survivors in the middle were huddled together. The men surrounded the women, the elderly, and those who were still in the center. They stared at the refugees who surrounded them with their backs to each other.
There were seven or eight people lying on the ground with wounds all over their bodies. The ground under them was already stained with blood, and they were clearly out of breath.
There were disaster victims and survivors among the dead.
Although the number of disaster victims was far more than the survivors, their physical strength was on apletely different level. So in the conflict just now, it was the disaster victims who suffered a big loss, leaving a few bodies behind.
However, after the stimtion of blood, the refugees eyes had turned red and they were on the verge of losing their minds.
MO Ruyue was sure that if the two of them had not returned and had left directly, these survivors would definitely not have been able to hold on for more than a few waves before being wiped out..
Chapter 408 - 408: Timely Blood Transfusion
Chapter 408: Timely Blood Transfusion
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Deng Feng took the lead and stood in front of the crowd. He was covered in wounds and was almost covered in blood.
Even so, he still stood firmly, fulfilling the promise he had made to everyone at that time.
He would do his best to protect them.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying looked at each other and made a decision at the same time.
If they could only save one person in the end, they would definitely choose Deng Feng.
In this situation where he was certain to die, he could have escaped without any effort) but he chose the most difficult and most tragic one. Such a quality was hard to find even if you had antern.
Deng Feng had no idea that his status in MO Ruyue and Gu Yings hearts had risen by a huge margin. He did not even see the two of them return.
The excessive loss of blood had already made his vision blurry, but he was still able to stand and not fall. It waspletely dependent on his willpower.
No, I m going to die.
He staggered, and in his blurry vision, he saw that the refugees he had forced back seemed to be rushing up again.
Two ck lights shed, and the sound of the whip exploding at the same time stunned the disaster victims who had surrounded them. Then, they were knocked over by the two airwaves.
Gu Ying arrived in time and supported Deng Feng who was about to fall. MO Ruyue waved the whip in her hand and forced back the refugees who tried to surround them again.
Ying Young Master Ying?
Although Deng Fengs consciousness was beginning to blur, he could feel that someone was supporting him. He tried his best to open his eyes and recognize Gu Ying.
Yes.
Other than MO Ruyue, Gu Ying didnt talk much to anyone else and only replied with a single word.
Deng Feng was relieved and immediately passed out.
Lady Qin, Young Master Ying has returned. Were saved!
Thats great, were saved!
Were saved!
The survivors who had already given up all hope burst out in loud cheers at the same time when they saw MO Ruyue and her partner appear. Their momentum was immediately lifted.
Lets rush out too. We cant just let others save us!
Someone called out, and the men who were protecting the women, children, the old, and the young began to spread out, ready to counterattack.
I dont need you guys, just stay here!
MO Ruyue coldly rebuked, making the men stop in their tracks.
The refugees were all weak from hunger, and they had almost seeded only because of their sneak attacks and their strength.
Now that they had met MO Ruyue, she had directly broken this momentum. Seeing that the two people behind them were both powerful people, they were instantly terrified and began to retreat step by step.
MO Ruyue waved her long whip and hooked it around the waist of the man closest to her. She pulled him back and he immediately flew into the air and was thrown in front of the survivors.
Get lost!
Herst whip left a deep mark on the ground and sessfully scared away the disaster victims.
Tie him up, I have something to ask himter.
MO Ruyue didnt follow up with another attack. Instead, she had the survivors tie up the disaster victims she had captured and then went to Gu Yings side.
Deng Feng had been arranged to lie down on a stretcher. He had many wounds on his body and had lost a lot of blood. His lips and cheeks were pale. He needs arge amount of blood transfusion and surgery immediately.
She made a judgment with just one look.
You go, Ill be outside.
Gu Ying didnt need her to say anything and knew what to do next.
MO Ruyue took out a bag of food and herbs from the carriage and handed it to Gu Ying while carrying Deng Feng into the carriage. Then, she closed the carriage door and entered the space.
Two people,e here and cook for everyone first. Then, the injured wille here for treatment ording to the degree of injury. The men with light injuries will be in charge of patrol and wont be attacked by the disaster victims again.
Without MO Ruyue, Gu Ying had to say a long string of words.
Fortunately, after spending some time with the survivors, everyone had a basic understanding of each other. The survivors were used to acting quickly ording to his words and did not let him repeat himself.
Young Master Ying, where did you get this grain? Could it be that when Lady
Qin said she was leaving, she was going to get food?
An old man who was helping with the cooking opened the bag and was dazzled by the shining millet inside.
If this bag of millet was made into porridge, it couldst everyone for another three or four days. Perhaps not everyone would be full, but at least they would not have to starve.
Gu Ying didnt say anything. He was sewing up the wound of a man with an injured arm.
Seeing that he did not respond, the old man did not continue to ask.
After the natural disaster, almost all the vegetation had been burned, and there was nothing to eat at all. Food was even rarer.
They should be content that they found something and gave them some. They shouldnt have asked about this.
The other women and children also began to move. Some helped to gather firewood to start a fire, some helped to bandage and apply medicine. Everyone was trying to find something to do instead of sitting around and waiting for food.
The survivors injuries were all superficial. Originally, the injuries they suffered in the natural disaster had been cured by MO Ruyues medical skills, but in this conflict with the disaster victims, they were injured again.
There were a few bloody corpses lying in the cooking area. Except for Gu Ying, who was used to not moving, the survivors would remember the disaster just now when they looked at it, and all of them had lingering fears.
Someone immediately went to drag the body away, but they stood sadly beside one body for a long time.
He was one of the survivors.
In the sneak attack just now, in order to protect a little girl from being snatched away, he was hit on the head by a hoe and almost died on the spot. There was no chance to save him.
The mother of the rescued girl also stood at the side and cried. If it wasnt for this persons help, her daughter would have long been taken away by the starving people.
Gu Ying was treating the injured while keeping an eye on the surroundings.
Not only did he have to prevent the disaster from making aeback, but he also had to prevent the survivors from getting close to the carriage.
They had clearly seen MO Ruyue move the grain and herbs from the carriage. It was hard to guarantee that no one would have any thoughts that they shouldnt have.
However, after a round of observation, he found that the selfish middle-aged woman was gone.
The rest of the people were also doing their own things honestly, and even seemed to deliberately avoid suspicion. Even if they had to pass by the carriage to get something, they would go around it from a distance.
An hourter, the carriage door opened again. MO Ruyue got down from the carriage and nodded to Gu Ying.
Ying, Deng Feng is fine now. He lost too much blood and his body is a little weak, but hes in good shape. Hell recover soon.
There was no difficulty in this level of surgery. As long as blood was transfused in time, the patients life could be saved.
I just looked around, that woman is not there.
Gu Ying also told her what he had seen, and MO Ruyue immediately showed an expression of I knew it.
Now I know how the disaster victims found their way here.
She and Gu Ying exchanged a look of tacit understanding. In fact, they had returned so quickly because they were worried that something like this would happen.
They didnt expect it to be true..
Chapter 409 Lets Go Now
409 Let''s Go Now "Lady Qin, Young Master Ying, the meal is ready. Why don''t you two take a rest and eat first?"
The old man in charge of cooking came over to greet them. If Mo Ruyue and Gu Ying didn''t eat first, they wouldn''t pick up their bowls no matter how hungry they were.
"We''re not hungry. You guys eat first, I still have something to do."
Mo Ruyue walked straight to the disaster victims who were tied up and thrown aside. She still had someone to interrogate.
The man had been captivated by the smell of the millet porridge. He stared at the steaming pot and couldn''t help swallowing his saliva.
"Do you want to eat?"
Mo Ruyue stood beside him, blocking his view.
The man nodded his head vigorously and even stretched his neck to look at the pot.
"Tell me, how did you guys get here?"
The disaster victims were stunned. They raised their heads to look atMo Ruyue and swallowed hard.
"This Lady, we just want to ask for food, we don''t really want to hurt people."
He thought of Mop Ruyue''s valiant appearance just now and the corpse left on the ground. His heart immediately started to beat wildly.
"Answer my question." Mo Ruyue repeated impatiently.
"It''s... There was a woman who suddenly rushed out and cried, saying that she wanted to enter the city and did not want to starve to death outside. We saw that she didn''t look like she had been hungry for a long time, so we surrounded her and asked... one time."
"She said that there werepanions here, and everyone had not starved along the way. She didn''t expect to starve to death outside the city, so we... So we came over."
The disaster victims answered intermittently.
Mo Ruyue''s eyes were cold and sharp, as if she could see through him with one nce. He didn''t even dare to make any more eye contact with her.
Even if he beautified his answer, Mo Ruyue could guess what happened to that woman. Just by looking at his evasive eyes, she knew that he definitely didn''t dare to tell the truth.
"What happened after you guys came?" Mo Ruyue continued to ask.
"Think carefully before you answer, don''t force me to use other means."
When the disaster victim was about to answer, she reminded him that even if he wanted to lie, there were still survivors as witnesses, and he would be easily exposed.
"We... We had sent two people to check on the situation. Seeing that no one seemed to be starving, we came to ask for some food."
"In the end, they said that they had run out of food and refused to give it to us. We didn''t believe them, so we said that we wanted to check it. Both sides were anxious and... So we started fighting."
The man had no choice but to tell her what had happened. Even so, he was still trying to find a reason to embellish himself and shirk his responsibility.
"Let''s not talk about whether there is food or not. Even if there is, why should I share it with you?"
Mo Ruyue''s words made the disaster victim shut his mouth and reveal an awkward expression.
"If you want to live, you have to take away the hope of others. Who gave you the right?"
She followed up with a second sentence.
Although it is said that people do not kill for themselves, and the social order is chaotic after natural disasters, it is not umon for any horrific things to happen, but since Mo Ruyue has decided to take care of it, she will take care of it to the end.
"Where do you want to take that little girl?"
Mo Ruyue asked the third question. It was also this question that caused the disaster victim''s expression to suddenly change. His face waspletely pale without any blood.
"No, I''m not thinking of taking her anywhere, it''s just... I just want to exchange her for some food."
After a long time, he finally squeezed out a sentence that was not sincere.
Even he himself didn''t believe this sentence, and he didn''t expect Mo Ruyue to believe it.
"Very well, you can continue to starve. You are not worthy of eating any grain."
Mo Ruyue didn''t force him to tell the truth because she wasn''t sure if she would break this person''s neck after hearing the answer.
She stood up, and Gu Ying happened to walk over with a bowl.
"Eat something, the night wind is too cold, it''s good to warm up."
The bowl was filled with thick millet porridge, seasoned with salt, and a few pieces of pickled vegetables.
Although the meal was extremely simple, it was more tempting than delicacies for the disaster victims who had been starving for a long time.
He swallowed hard, and his bound hands kept struggling, trying to break free and take the bowl from Mo Ruyue''s hands.
Mo Ruyue held the bowl and sat down not far from him so that he could see the porridge in the bowl more clearly.
Gu Ying had specially asked the old man to make the porridge thicker, so that the injured survivors would have to eat their fill before they had the strength to continue on their journey.
Since the town here was already overwhelmed, they could only look for another ce. As for the people in the city, they could not care about them.
"Lady, I beg you, give me something to eat. Even if I deserve to die, can you let me be a full ghost?"
The disaster victim couldn''t resist the temptation and begged Mo Ruyue.
However, she had deliberately used this bowl of porridge to punish him, so how could she let him have his wish?
Mo Ruyue turned a deaf ear to the pleas of the disaster victim. She only slowly drank the porridge, and ate it with a few pieces of pickled vegetables.
The survivors also looked over from time to time, their eyes full of hatred for the disaster victim.
Mo Ruyue had caught one of the disaster victims who had rushed to the front. Before she had returned, this person must have also killed the survivors. Otherwise, he would not have attracted such resentful gazes.
After slowly finishing the entire bowl of porridge, Mo Ruyue took out a piece of cloth, rolled it into a ball, and stuffed it into the person''s mouth, turning the disturbing noise into a muffled whimper from his throat.
"Ying, it''s not a good time to move Deng Feng tonight. They''re still in shock. Let''s rest for the night and set off tomorrow morning."
Mo Ruyue walked to Gu Ying''s side and said in a low voice.
To be on the safe side, they should have left immediately. The disaster victims outside the city gate were fine, but if they alerted the county government in the city, it would be even more troublesome.
However, looking at the survivors, they were all still in shock. Even if they wanted to leave, they wouldn''t be able to go far. Moreover, the fire in the night would make the target more obvious.
"In my opinion, we should be on our way now."
Gu Ying shook his head.
The surroundings were very quiet, and only the crackling of the bonfire and the sound of the night wind blowing could be heard.
It was already early spring, and it was time for all things toe back to life. The insects that had been dormant for a winter should alsoe back to life.
Insects were a wonderful species, and their vitality was the weakest but the strongest. Even if this natural disaster could killrge animals and nts, it could not make insects disappear.
However, Gu Ying didn''t hear any insects or crawling sounds, which meant that they had sensed the danger in advance and had hidden themselves.
Although the survivors spontaneously organized themselves and began to patrol the surrounding area, their premonition of danger was too slow. It would be toote by the time they discovered something.
Mo Ruyue hesitated for a moment and then nodded. "Alright, we''ll do as you say. Tell them to pack up and get ready to leave."
She was too rigid.
Deng Feng could bepletely moved into her space, so he did not have to worry about his wound being torn open by the shaking of the carriage.
As for the problem of lighting, they could use ropes to connect them together to avoid getting lost. As for the stones and bumps on the ground, they could only use crutches to explore the way.
Although it was a little troublesome, it could at least improve the concealment of the movement.
Chapter 410 Is He Also A Transmigrator?
410 Is He Also A Transmigrator?
When the survivors heard the news, they began to pack up without saying a word, wishing they could grow wings and get as far away from here as possible.
The team of dozens of survivors quickly packed up and were ready to set off at any time.
Gu Ying, who had gone out to check out the situation, had also returned.
"Bing ''Er, there''s indeed something wrong with the city. A group of people have gathered and are preparing to sneak out in the middle of the night. It''s said that they heard the news from the retreating disaster victims, and they can get food here."
Gu Ying had always had absolute confidence in his intuition, and this time, it didn''t disappoint him.
"That''s why it''s necessary to cut the weeds and eliminate the roots sometimes."
Mo Ruyue''s eyes turned cold. The rescue after a natural disaster had finally drawn out the dark side of her that she had hidden away.
"Isn''t this what you said before, human nature is selfish? If their method of snatching food doesn''t work, then we''ll change to another method that they can''t resist."
Gu Ying''s voice was also very cold, but he was looking at Mo Ruyue with an even more worried expression.
It wasn''t easy for Bing ''Er to get rid of her dark past and start a new life. He didn''t want her to fall back into the darkness because of this.
"Let''s go, before they notice our movements, we should go now."
Mo Ruyue said decisively.
Fortunately, the people in the city were afraid of alerting the enemy, so they only sent a few scouts to monitor the situation from a distance.
If the people inside hadid a heavy ambush, it would be difficult for her to avoid killing if she didn''t want to.
The survivors'' nerves were very tense, and they immediately took action when they heard Mo Ruyue''s orders.
Everyone''s feet were covered with a fewyers of cotton cloth, and the hooves and wheels were also wrapped in cotton cloth to minimize the sound.
"Ying, you lead the team this time. I''ll cover the back. I''ll also leave some gifts for the pursuers."
This kind of work was usually done by Gu Ying, but this time it was snatched by Mo Ruyue.
"Are you going to use medicine?"
Gu Ying immediately thought of Mo Ruyue''s specialty.
"This is the simplest way to avoid casualties. Of course, if something out of control happens while they''re unconscious, they can only me themselves.
Mo Ruyue could understand the selfishness in human nature, but she didn''t want to be the sacrifice of other people''s selfish actions, so she nned to give them a taste of their own medicine and also be "selfish."
"Alright, be careful. I''ll be waiting for you in front."
Gu Ying gave a simple warning, then returned to the carriage and left with everyone without looking back.
As for the ce they were going to after leaving, the two of them had already scouted out the situation today. They rode on two ck horses and ran dozens of miles in one breath before they found a very suitable small vige.
The vigers must have fled, and the entire vige was abandoned.
Other than the settling dust, the surrounding vegetation and the primitivend were not severely damaged.
If these survivors were sent over and some food and seeds were left behind, they might be able to make it in time for the spring plowing.
As for whether the original owner of the vige would return, and what would happen if he did, the two of them couldn''t think so far ahead.
It was hard to say how many of those who left their homes to escape would fall on the way, or how many of them would settle down somewhere.
Let''s live each day well before nning for the future.
Mo Ruyue walked alone in the opposite direction of the group. The darkness could not block her vision, but for every ordinary survivor, every step they took had to be carefully probed. It was not easy to walk.
With the help of the rope, the team could move a little faster, but it was just a little.
At this speed, it would not be easy for them to walk three miles before dawn.
In addition, although Gu Ying had already dealt with the spies in the city, it had been a long time since anyone had returned to report, so it would definitely arouse the vignce of the city.
At that time, in order to prevent the survivors from running away, the county government would probably send people out of the city to pursue them.
What Mo Ruyue could do now was to dy the speed of her pursuers as much as possible.
Knockout powder was the best way to stop them, but of course, it would only be effective if she, the one who set them up, used it personally.
From the analysis of the information brought back by Gu Ying, it could be said that the city was in danger. The supply of food and herbs was facing a shortage.
Some people had already begun to secretly incite the people in the city, as well as the victims who had been taken in previously. It was possible that they wanted to take the opportunity to seize the town.
Once those people seeded, not only would the people in the city suffer, but the victims of disaster who came to seek refuge without knowing would also fall into the devil''s den again.
Mo Ruyue had seen such a scene before in some extremely chaotic small countries. The power-holders there changed rapidly, and it could even be one in the morning and reced by another at night.
The magistrate must have thought of this as well, so even if he had only heard a little from the refugees outside the city, he was still willing to send people to test the waters before taking action.
He was using the conflict in the outside world to ease the potential crisis in the city.
Mo Ruyue''s speed was very fast. She had already quietly sneaked into a ce about ten meters away from the gathering ce of the disaster victims outside the city.
There were no torches on the city walls, and no one was patrolling.
Although it was a small city, the city wall was well built. At least, with the current physical strength and tools of the refugees, it was impossible for them to climb the city wall to enter the city.
The refugees outside the city were able to light two piles of firewood. In order to find food, they had collected everything that could be burned in the surrounding area, but the remaining amount was not enough tost for a few more days.
So now they could only try to burn as little as possible, leaving only a small fire to provide warmth.
The fire was dim, and the light was almost non-existent. This made it even more impossible for the survivors to see Mo Ruyue, who had already lurked in front of them.
They tried their best to stretch their arms to get close to the fire to get a little warmth, but when they moved their hands away, the little warmth that they had finally gotten would be quickly taken away by the bone-piercing night wind.
From time to time, some people would get up and walk a few rounds on the spot, then sit down or lie down, trying to curl up their bodies as much as possible to resist the bone-piercing cold of thete night.
Mo Ruyue quietly lurked. In order to move nimbly, she didn''t wear a thick winter coat.
Under her linen clothes, she was wearing a windbreaker that kept her warm. In addition, she had already undergone a thorough transformation, and there was a warm current flowing through her body, making her not afraid of such a cold spring night.
Perhaps it was too cold, the refugees were all leaning against each other drowsily, no one had the desire to talk.
Mo Ruyue could hear someone whispering, and the voice came from the city wall more than ten meters away.
"When can we take action? Why did my Lord have to wait until thetter half of the night? He said that this was the time when those people were the least prepared, but that was also when we were the most drowsy!"
"That''s enough. We''ll do whatever the Lord says. Otherwise, do you want to exchange identities with your subordinates?"
"No! There''s food and drinks in the city, I don''t want to be like them."
"Then shut up! If you ruin the adults'' business, no one can save you!"
There were already people lurking on the city wall, as if they were monitoring the situation of the refugees outside the city. But even if they were looking down from a high position, they could not discover Mo Ruyue''s existence.
That county government official even knew about this? Could he also be a transmigrator?
A thought shed through Mo Ruyue''s mind.
Chapter 411 New Victims Of Disaster
Chapter 411 New Victims Of Disaster
The human body would enter a deep sleep state after midnight. It was indeed the most rxed and unguarded state. Basically, manyrge-scale sneak attacks would choose this time.
However, ording to Gu Ying, when he was an assassin in the blood tower, he was also assigned many tasks in the early hours of the morning, so this concept should not be a rare thing at this time.
It was indeed a little arbitrary to judge that the county government was another transmigrator.
After the simple conversation, there was no more sound on the city wall. If it wasn''t for the faint sound of breathing, one would even think that the two hidden people had already left.
As time went by, the bonfires that were lit by the refugees were almostpletely extinguished. A gust of wind would blow away the charcoal ash in the bonfire, disperse some sparks, or temporarily ignite some small mes.
The unbearable cold night had exhausted many people''s physical strength, and they snuggled up and fell asleep.
Mo Ruyue quietly lurked, not feeling the slightest bit tired or bored.
The longest time she had spent in hiding was seven days and seven nights in a swamp in a rainforest. After she sessfullypleted the mission, it took her nearly half a month topletely wash away the smell of the mud on her body.
Inparison, the current ambush was nothing at all. It could not even be considered a warm-up.
She didn''t know how far Ying and the others had gone. ording to their previous speed, they should be able to walk four or five miles.
Mo Ruyue thought to herself.
This speed was really slow, but in the absence of a torch to light up the ce, and with the women, children, and elderly slowing down their pace, it was still very fast.
Just as she was lost in her thoughts, there was finally some movement in the city.
A series of faint footsteps came from behind the city wall. It could be heard that many people were gathering, and it was presumably time to act.
There were two city gates in the small city, one at the front and one at the back. Normally, in order to prevent the refugees outside the city from swarming in when the city gate was opened, the people in the small city should note out from the difficult not to alert the disaster victims outside the front gate. So when they moved, main gate.
However, it would take more time to go around the back gate, and it would also be difficult not to alert the disaster victims outside the front gate. So when they moved, they had to make sure that these unstable factors would not affect their movements.
Mo Ruyue took out a simple gas mask and put it on. She had already guessed what the people in the city were going to do.
Sure enough, someone peeked out from the wall and carefully sized up the group of refugees outside, before quickly shrinking back.
After the time it took to brew a cup of tea, two more people poked their heads out. This time, there were two more ropes hanging down from the top of the city wall. The two people climbed down the ropes silently.
Their faces were covered with masked sweat towels, and their ck clothes blended perfectly into the night. Even if someone was not asleep, it would be difficult to detect the existence of these two people.
The two of them looked like professional people. Even though theynded quietly, they still waited for a while to make sure that no one was rmed.
Then, they lowered their bodies and sneaked to a ce not far from the refugees, throwing the things in their hands into the fire that was about to go out.
A crisp sound came from the fire, waking a few people who were in light sleep.
Some of them snorted, turned over, changed their positions, and fell asleep again. Some opened their eyes slightly, and after seeing the mes in the fire, they muttered a few words and fell asleep again.
A wisp of bluish-white smoke rose from the fire. Although it was small, it dispersed very quickly.
The smoke with a slightly bitter smell spread out, and everyone who came into contact with it would turn their heads and fall into a deeper sleep.
As expected, they had used this method.
Mo Ruyue was not surprised at all.
This method could ensure that the people in the city would not have any worries when they left the city to pursue.
By the time the victims of the disaster woke up, the survivors would have long been robbed. Perhaps there would not even be any evidence left. Who knew what had happened?
However, the county magistrate had never considered that Mo Ruyue was the ancestor of using medicine and poison.
The two men in ck waited patiently. After the time it took to brew a cup of tea, they began to check whether the refugees had all fallen asleep.
They didn''t notice Mo Ruyue who was so close to them, not only because the ce she was hiding was a blind spot, but also because she had directly reduced her breathing and heartbeat, almost perfectly imitating a stone.
"You can go back and report to the Lord. You go, I''ll go and take down those people."
One of them raised his voice slightly. He was sure that among all the long-eared people, no one was awake except for them.
Therefore, he made the wrong decision. When there were only two people, he chose to split up.
This was exactly what Mo Ruyue wanted.
When the messenger disappeared from the wall, she immediately turned around and chased after the man who "dealt" with the survivors.
The Mountain Valley where the survivors were hiding was still quite a distance away from the small town. Although the person who had set off first had, he had only walked half the way when Mo Ruyue caught up with him.
She had even returned to the Mountain Valley to prepare a small gift for the person who had arrivedte.
Given that the man was also an expert in this business, Mo Ruyue also foresaw that he would discover the abnormality in the col in advance, so the trap she set was to close the mouth.
The trap would only be activated when that person realized that something was wrong and prepared to retreat.
Now, it only depended on how high his vignce was, whether he would fall into the trappletely unconsciously, or if he would keenly sense that something was wrong and withdraw in time.
However, regardless of whether his reaction was the former or thetter, the oue would be the same.
When Mo Ruyue caught up to him, she was not prepared to let him escape.
That person was quickly approaching the Mountain Valley. He was so focused on making the first contribution that he didn''t realize that he had already stepped into a trap.
It was quiet in the valley. There was no fire for warmth, nor were there any soft sounds.
The man who was approaching the col suddenly stopped and looked hesitantly at the dark entrance.
It was said that there were dozens of survivors, men, women, old and young. They had been harassed by the refugees today and should be in a state of shock. No matter what, they should not be silent.
Could it be that he was scared away?
The man immediately became nervous at the thought of this possibility.
Although the city looked calm now, the actual situation was very bad. If it wasn''t for the county magistrate''s influence, the bailiffs who knew the inside story would have run away long ago.
He had only heard the news brought by the refugees outside. They said that this small city was already very lucky. Many other towns and viges had been destroyed. Even if they escaped, they would only be new victims.
The reason why the deputy had his eyes on this group of survivors was because he wanted to get information about food from them.
If this group of people ran away, how was he going to exin it to the Lord when he returned!
In a moment of desperation, he didn''t think much and directly rushed into the mountain. He never thought that someone would set up an ambush in this situation, especially for him.
Chapter 412 Unconscious
Chapter 412 Unconscious
The man''s heart turned cold as soon as he entered the valley.
Even though the valley was pitch ck, with the help of the faint moonlight, one could still see the mess on the ground.
In addition to the traces of fighting left during the day, there were traces of survivors living for a few days, and some garbage left behind when they left.
It could be seen that they left in a hurry, even leaving behind some stretchers and cooking utensils.
He immediately walked to the fire and reached out to test the temperature.
The bottom of the stove was already cold. It was obvious that the person had left for a long time.
Although the man was a little flustered, he didn''t lose his mind. He quickly calmed down and analyzed the situation.
"What did you see?"
A voice suddenly came from behind.
"Those people are too much of a burden, and they''re using the darkness to escape. They don''t even have a torch, so even if they leave early, they won''t be able to go far. If we go back and report to the Lord now, we still have time to catch up!"
The man said subconsciously.
As soon as he finished speaking, his scalp exploded.
In this quiet night, in the empty mountain hollow, where would there be a second person other than him!
He turned his head back abruptly. There was no one behind him, and he could see the entrance to the col at a nce.
Just now was... An illusion?
The man''s back was drenched in cold sweat in an instant. He wondered if he had been too nervous just now, which was why he had hallucinated.
He carefully observed the surrounding environment and walked around a few times. Other than the strange protruding stones in the mountain, he could only hear the whistling of the wind.
Perhaps it was because the sound of the wind was too simr to a woman''s voice that he mistook it for someone talking to him.
Thinking that he had found the reason, the man rxed a little, but there was still some tension in his eyes.
He didn''t want to waste any more time. Just as he was about to leave, a chuckle came from behind him.
"You''re leaving just like that? Don''t you want to stay a little longer?"
This time, the voice was right next to his ear, and there was a cool breeze blowing on the back of his neck, making his scalp explode in an instant!
The man couldn''t be bothered to look back. He was 100% sure that he wasn''t hallucinating. He grabbed the ground with his toes and pushed off with force, and his whole body shot out.
The speed at which he was fleeing was ten times faster than the speed at which he had rushed to the mountain hollow.
As expected, the adrenaline triggered by fear could turn a person into Superman in a very short time.
In the next second, a transparent wall seemed to appear out of thin air in front of him, and his whole body mmed into it at an extremely high speed. He did not even make a sound and immediately fainted.
The transparent wall was the trap that Mo Ruyue had set.
Every time she entered and exited the space, it would cause a brief spatial fluctuation. This was the so-called space barrier being opened.
This barrier was much stronger than an ordinary wall.
Mo Ruyue had mastered thew of time after going in and out countless times. Just now, after scaring the man, she teleported to the front and entered the space, causing the man to hit his head on the opened space barrier and faint.
In fact, she could just knock the man out with a hand knife, but that would be boring.
After being knocked unconscious by the space barrier, the man would wake up with a confused perception of time and memory. This was Mo Ruyue''s true purpose.
He couldn''t even remember what he had gone through, and everything he said would lose its authenticity because of this reason.
Mo Ruyue quickly came out of the medium and looked down at the unconscious man.
His forehead was swollen and bleeding. Although he had been hit hard, it was not life-threatening.
"Just lie down for a while. Yourpanions wille and find you soon."
Although Mo Ruyue didn''t intend to kill him, she still wanted him to suffer a little, so she left him lying on the cold ground and returned to the col to observe the situation.
"Why isn''t he back yet? That Mountain Valley isn''t too far away, why would they take so long to get there?"
The county magistrate had already gathered his men and was waiting at the foot of the city.
As soon as the scout returned, they would immediately set off.
"My Lord, I heard from the refugees that there was a young man and woman among the survivors. They were both experts in their skills. They were beaten up by those two and fled."
"Could it be that our spies have rmed the couple and caused an ident?"
Advisor Hu came over and said worriedly.
"No matter what, we can''t dy any longer. Even if those two people are good, we have more people. Do we still have to be afraid of them?"
Since the county magistrate had said so, no one else had any objections.
If they didn''t try, in at most half a month, they would have to face a situation that wasn''t just hunger.
The city gate quietly opened, and a group of people tiptoed out of the city.
The refugees outside the door had long been knocked out by the medicinal smoke, and they would not wake up until the effect of the medicine wore off.
As for the people in the city, they were under curfew early every night. If they were found to be staying outside during the curfew, they would be driven out of the city at once, so no one dared to take the risk of going out after the curfew.
As soon as this group of people left the city gate, they quickly advanced toward the mountain.
Mo Ruyue had discovered them when they were still a few dozen meters away. At least thirty strong men had returned. To the survivors, who were mostly old, young, women, and children, it was equivalent to announcing their end.
"Come on, I''ll only be able to chase after the main force without worry if I keep you here. As for what will happen to you guys after that, don''t me me."
Mo Ruyue sneered and entered the space.
The group of people came quickly, but they were very cautious.
He stopped about 20 meters away from the mouth of the cave and sent out another scout.
The man carefully entered the mountain and quickly rushed out, shouting, "My Lord, something has indeed happened to Constable Li!"
"What''s going on? What''s happening inside? "
The county magistrate was stunned. Although he had thought of this possibility before, he still had a trace of hope. Now that it was confirmed, his heart immediately sank.
"As soon as I entered the valley, I found Constable Li lying on the ground unconscious. There was no one in the valley. Apparently, the survivors were scared away by the disaster victims. The charcoal fire left behind has already cooled down."
The next piece of news was even worse. This meant that they had to quickly catch up and not let those survivors escape.
He really couldn''t think of anything that could have caused Constable Li to knock himself unconscious on the rock wall and then fall right in the middle.
"Wake Constable Li up immediately and ask him what happened!"
The county magistrate was not in a hurry to chase after them. He had also thought that the group of people could leave quietly. Other than theck of light from the torch, their speed would not be fast. There were also many burdens in the team, which would slow down the speed of the entire team.
Therefore, he still believed that he could catch up with those people. The most important task now was to find out what had happened to Constable Li and whether there was an ambush.
"My Lord, Constable Li, he, he seemed to have hit something and fainted. I only found a wound on his forehead."
The person who went to check on Constable Li replied.
"What did he hit? Could it be that he hit those rocks?"
Advisor Hu turned his head to look at the cliffs on both sides. He also felt that his own deduction was somewhat absurd.
Although this was a Mountain Valley, the distance between the two mountain walls was still very wide, about a dozen meters.
He really couldn''t think of anything that could have caused Constable Li to knock himself unconscious on the rock wall and then fall right in the middle.
Moreover, from the way Constable Li fell, it was obvious that he had been hit by a head-on collision.
This kind of contradictory situation made him unable to give a reasonable exnation.
In fact, he had another spection that he kept in his heart and did not dare to say it out loud.
That spection was too shocking and ethereal. Even thinking about it now made him feel a chill down his back.
Chapter 413 The Desire For Food
Chapter 413 The Desire For Food
Just as he was guessing, Constable Li woke up.
Before he could open his eyes, a series of cream spilled out of his mouth. His face was scrunched up, and he was obviously in extreme pain.
"Constable Li, please wake up. What happened just now? Who attacked you?"
Advisor Hu asked impatiently.
"What happened? What''s wrong with me?"
Constable Li finally came back to his senses after being called a few times. However, his mind was in a mess, and he didn''t even understand what Advisor Hu meant by his question.
He watched Advisor Hu''s mouth open and close, trying to help him understand Advisor Hu''s meaning through his gaze.
"Have you forgotten what you came here for?"
The county magistrate had also noticed that something was wrong with him. He was in a daze, and his eyes were sometimes in a state of emptiness.
"My Lord, did this subordinate ept a mission? I remember it was still daytime just now. Howe it''s sote now?"
Constable Li finally sobered up a little. However, when he saw his surroundings clearly, his expression suddenly became strange.
"Daytime? What''s thest thing you can remember?"
The county government finally realized what was wrong. After Constable Li woke up from hisa, he seemed to have forgotten what had happened during this period of time.
"I was ordered to guard outside the rice store and help Grand Master maintain order."
As expected, Constable Li''s answer confirmed the county magistrate''s guess.
He didn''t look like he was pretending, so the idea of getting any information from him was going to be in vain.
"Sir, do you think we should continue chasing?"
Advisor Hu couldn''t help but remind him when he saw the county government office deep in thought.
Even if the group of survivors walked slowly, they would still travel a long distance after a long time.
And they obviously couldn''t leave this small city for too long. After all, the medicine in the victims'' bodies was limited. Once they woke up, they would immediately enter the city and never leave again.
"Chase. Of course we''re going to catch up."
The county government was decisive and quickly gave the order.
He also remembered what the refugees had said. Perhaps the problem with Constable Li was caused by that couple.
However, he had the advantage in numbers, so he wasn''t afraid of any schemes from the two.
Moreover, he was an official of the Imperial Court. He did not believe that they would dare to take the risk of killing him.
"Leave someone behind to send Constable Li back. Keep a close eye on the movements of the refugees outside the city. Once they show signs of waking up, light the herbs again."
To be on the safe side, the county government gave a second order.
The herbal smoke was very harmful to the human body. Usually, there would be some side effects after using it once. If it was used a second time in a very short time, the damage to the victims would be irreversible.
But at this time, the county government could not care so much.
In order to protect the majority of the people, he had to have the determination and courage to cut his losses.
A man was left behind. He helped Constable Li up and staggered toward the direction of the small city.
The county magistrate and the others continued to follow the traces left by the survivors and began to pursue the other side of the mountain.
However, just as they reached the middle, they heard a "bang". The leading pathfinder seemed to have hit something. His head jerked back and he staggered a few steps back before stopping.
"What''s going on?"
The county government immediately signaled for everyone to stop.
"This subordinate... This subordinate seems to have knocked into something."
The man was only dizzy for a short while, but he was in a much better state than Constable Li.
"Did you hit something? But there''s nothing in front of you."
Advisor Hu also said in surprise, his voice trembling slightly.
"I don''t know either. There was nothing in front of me, but I felt like I had hit my head on something. I almost fainted."
"Maybe his situation is the same as what happened to Constable Li just now."
The county government thought of how Constable Li had fallen. There was no difference between the two of them, except that one had fainted and the other had not.
"But what did he hit? There was nothing there."
Advisor Hu had already seen someone trying to reach in that direction, but there was no resistance, and his arm easily reached in.
"Sir, there''s nothing here."
The man who was hit couldn''t believe it either. He reached out to touch it again, and his face suddenly showed a frightened and confused expression.
"That''s impossible. I clearly bumped into something just now."
He was eager to prove that he wasn''t lying. Just then, another man who was walking forward fell to the ground, shocking everyone.
"Don''t move! Stand still and wait!"
The county magistrate came back to his senses and shouted at his subordinates who were like headless flies.
"Those with ropes, tie yourself up first. Then, throw the ropes to the others, one after another!
His reaction was fast. Since the transparent wall appeared and disappeared like a ghost, he could connect the people together. Even when he threw the rope, he could also judge whether there was a "trap" in the empty space.
Mo Ruyue was in the space and could see every move of these people outside clearly. She couldn''t help but sneer. "You''re quite smart."
Although she was the master of the space and didn''t need to spend much energy to enter and exit at will, she still needed a lot of control to precisely control the space barrier like she did just now.
Since the county government had alreadye up with such a self-righteous idea, she could take a break for now.
Everyone outside the dimension, including the county government, had been tied together with a rope. This was originally intended to be used to tie the survivors up.
Now, he could be considered to have made the best use of it.
Strangely enough, after the rope was tied, no one bumped into the strange transparent wall again when they walked forward in a line.
The group tried to move forward and saw the traces left by the survivors.
"They''re out of the mountain, so their speed won''t be too fast. With the old, weak, women, and children as burdens, and the dark sky, we can still make it in time even if we speed up."
Advisor Hu and the county government were walking in the middle of the crowd. He loudly encouraged the people in front and behind him.
Although these bailiffs and followers also voiced their agreement, their morale was clearly much lower.
If they were to be at a disadvantage right from the start, the blow to their morale would be too obvious.
Their motivation came from their desire for food, but after experiencing these strange things and the sudden escape of the survivors, they didn''t seem to have much hope.
"Everyone, keep your spirits up! Think about it, under such a natural disaster, they can still walk out of our city in good health. If they don''t have enough food, they''ll end up like the other victims."
"So as long as we can find them, we won''t have to worry about food."
Advisor Hu used a second move, but the same move had already been used once, and the effect of repeating it now was clearly not very good.
They walked all the way to the second half of the hill and saw that the end was just around the corner. Just as everyone was about to rx a little, something happened.
The man walking behind suddenly felt a breath on his neck, and his already tense nerves suddenly broke.
He jumped up with a cry, scaring the people in front of him. Then, he was brought down by the man who began to run wildly.
Fortunately, although everyone was in the same boat and was easily implicated, it was also easy for everyone to work together to control the frightened people.
However, Mo Ruyue would not give them such an opportunity.
Chapter 414 Excellent Quality
Chapter 414 Excellent Quality
The frightened man kept shouting "There''s a ghost". Just as he was about to be controlled by the crowd, two more people felt someone blow on their necks at the same time.
"There''s a ghost!"
Screams of terror resounded through the night sky. The three people in different positions of the rope chains began to run around at the same time,pletely disrupting everyone''s pace.
In the chaos, people kept falling and being stepped on. Terrified wails kept ringing out.
Although Mo Ruyue had personally nned all of this, she still couldn''t help but feel emotional when she really watched this scene from the side.
When a man was afraid, there was no need for a woman.
The Mountain Valley gradually quieted down, and when itpletely returned to normal, it was already an hourter.
A group of peopley on the ground, lying on their backs and panting heavily.
"Where, where did this ghoste from! All of you... You''re just scaring yourselves!"
"But... But someone''s blowing on the back of my neck!"
"There''s someone behind you, maybe... Maybe it''s not strange to feel someone blowing on you when you get closer!"
"But... But I''m thest one. There''s no one else behind me!"
After the series of conversations, the Mountain Valley once again fell into a strange silence.
After a long while, the magistrate slowly sat up. He had been stepped on a few times in the chaos, and his body was still sore, but his condition was slightly better than before.
"We''ve fallen into someone''s trap. Their goal is to keep us here."
He finally regained his rationality and thought through the entire situation.
"But... The transparent wall we just encountered and the breathing at the neck, how did they make it?"
Everyone had personally experienced this, and they couldn''t see or touch it. They didn''t see anyone causing trouble, so they felt that ghosts and gods were more reliable.
"Do you still remember what the refugees said about a man and a woman with strong martial arts skills among the survivors? Some people''s martial arts skills are so fast that it''s hard for us to see their figures."
"I think this should be a warning from those two people. We should stop here."
The county government''s analysis finally convinced the uneasy subordinates.
Perhaps this was really a warning from a pair of experts. And all they could do now was to immediately stop, give up their original intentions, and return to the city.
After resting for a while, everyone slowly got up and limped out of the hill.
This time, no one mentioned food again. In fact, they were already lucky enough to survive.
In the chaotic period after the natural disaster, allws and ethics were facing copse, just like what they had originally nned to do.
Even if the survivors really did have some food left, after they robbed it all, would those dozens of old and weak women and children still have a way to live?
Everyone knew the final oue, but in order to continue living, almost everyone tacitly acknowledged and ignored the consequences.
After the group had left the mountain, Mo Ruyue came out of the space.
"It''s a pity. If that County Office was in another city and could wait for help to arrive, he would definitely do something for the people. It''s just that he''s already turned ck now. Only the people in his city are human, and the others are already walking corpses..."
She clearly realized that the county magistrate had some mental problems, which could be ssified as a form of emergency PTSD.
However, she didn''t have time to treat his illness now. She only hoped that he would be on his own in the future.
Mo Ruyue looked at the group of people''s backs and sighed in her heart. Then she turned around without hesitation and chased after the survivors who had already left.
Just as he turned around the corner, a ck shadow came to greet Mo Ruyue.
It affectionately rubbed its head against Mo Ruyue''s body and snorted continuously.
"Big ck? Did Ying ask you to pick me up?"
Mo Ruyue reached out and patted its nose, then immediately turned over and mounted the horse.
It was probably Gu Ying who had let it out and asked it to take her to them.
During the day, they could follow the tracks left behind by the crowd, but at night, it was inevitable that they would make mistakes.
Although she and Gu Ying had already decided on the escape route, Big ck''s presence saved her a lot of effort.
After half an hour, Mo Ruyue could already see the fire in the distance. They had arrived at the abandoned vige.
"Lady Qin is here!"
There was still some distance from the vige entrance when a person emerged from behind arge rock by the roadside. It was one of the survivors.
"Hmm, did he arrange for you to be on guard? You''ve worked hard."
Mo Ruyue smiled and greeted him.
From the looks of it, it was probably Gu Ying''s arrangement.
Now the survivors were already like birds startled by the twang of a bow, they could no longer withstand the threat of any wind or grass.
"Young Master Ying is in the vige. He said that he was waiting for you to return. You should go over quickly."
The man then added, "By the way, Brother Deng is awake."
"Deng Feng''s awake?"
This was good news.
After Mo Ruyue nodded, she urged her horse to rush back to the vige.
Most of the houses were upied. Some people had long been tired and immediately fell asleep as soon as they had a safe ce to stay.
Some people were too shocked and their tense nerves could not rx, so they could only sit around the fire to keep warm and kill time.
Gu Ying randomly picked a house that looked very clean. Even in the face of an escape situation, the courtyard did not seem messy or dirty. It was only covered with a thickyer of dust, and could be moved in after a little cleaning.
He had long heard the sound of Big ck''s horse hooves, so he went to the courtyard gate to wee them. As expected, he saw Mo Ruyue slowly walking out of the night.
"How is it, Bing ''Er? Those people should have suffered a lot and won''t dare to chase us anymore."
He stepped forward to take the horse''s reins,pletely doubting Mo Ruyue''s ability.
"That goes without saying. I also found that you men seem to be more afraid of ghosts than women!"
Mo Ruyue smiled maliciously, looking at Gu Ying''s eyes which were a little dazed.
"Alright, I''ll stop teasing you. I heard that Deng Feng has woken up? How''s his condition?"
Mo Ruyue only teased him once before stopping. She couldn''t bear to tease him for too long. In her heart, no matter how strong she was, she would always be the one who needed to be protected.
She was only afraid that she could not be stronger, so how could she tolerate some unspeakable shorings?
"He just lost too much blood. When the medicine wears off, he will naturally wake up. I''ve already boiled some medicine for him, so I''ll just warm it up and let him drink it. "
"That''s good. I''d be really sad if something happened to someone like Brother Deng."
Mo Ruhan rarely epted a person easily. Even her babies had the advantage of age and status. However, Deng Feng had really gained recognition through his excellent character.
"Bing ''Er, are you considering bringing him along in the future?"
Gu Ying suddenly asked. After he saw the surprise in Mo Ruyue''s eyes, a smile also appeared in his eyes.
This was the tacit understanding between the two of them. She didn''t even need to say her thoughts out loud, and he couldpletely understand them.
"I do have this n."
Mo Ruyue said without hesitation.
"There''s no one else in his family now, and he''s all alone. I think he''s a good person and has a lot of strength. If we can bring him with us, we''ll have one more trustworthy helper in the future."
"As long as you''ve thought it through, I have no problem with it. Besides, we don''t need a mouth to eat."
Chapter 415 - 415: Improved Farm Equipment
Chapter 415: Improved Farm Equipment
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gu Ying didnt object.
During the time they spent with the survivors, Deng Feng had fully proved his character. Not only did he gain MO Ruyues trust, but he also gained his trust.
Thats good. Ill bring the medicine to himter and tell him about this. Ill ask him for his opinion.
MO Ruyue already had this thought on the way back.
She and Gu Ying wouldnt be staying in the vige for too long. The babies couldnt stay in the space any longer. They had to move north as soon as possible.
Alright, Ill go take a look at the situation outside the vige. You should rest early in a while. Ive already cleaned your room.
Gu Ying pointed to the room next to his.
Although the two of them had already made things clear, her identity was still Lady Qin, and she was still living in such a feudal era. They had experienced the recovery period of this natural disaster together, so she really didnt have the mood to think about other things.
Not long after, MO Ruyue carried a bowl of medicinal soup and knocked on
Deng Fengs door.
Brother Deng, its me, MO Ruyue.
Lady Qin is here, pleasee in!
Deng Feng had just woken up, and his voice was obviously weak.
Brother Deng, Im here to deliver the medicine to you. This is to nourish qi and blood. and to strengthen your vitality. Your bodys foundation is very good, and youll get better soon after taking this medicine.
MO Ruyue ced the bowl of medicine on the bed and helped Deng Feng sit up.
Ive made Lady Qin worry. My small injury will be fine. There is no need to spend this money to get medicinal herbs for me to drink.
Deng Feng said, embarrassed.
He had never heard of anyone who could survive after losing so much blood. If it wasnt for Lady Qins miraculous hands, he would be replying to the king of hell now.
The medicinal herbs are ready-made. Its fine if you dont have them, but it doesnt make sense if you have them but dont use them.
MO Ruyue shook her head.
As long as it was someone she acknowledged, they would all be included in her sphere of influence. Naturally, she would think of anything good.
She watched Deng Feng finish the medicine and said as he was clearing the bowls, Brother Deng, theres something I want to ask you. Think about it and give me an answer.
Seeing MO Ruyues serious expression, Deng Feng immediately wanted to sit up straight. His expression became serious and he looked at her a little nervously.
Lady Qin, whatever you want to say, no matter what it is, as long as I, Deng Feng, can do it, I will not shirk my duty!
Yes, Brother Deng, you dont have to be so nervous. Its not a matter of life and death. Dont worry.
MO Ruyue didnt know whether tough or cry as she tried to persuade him.
If she had known earlier, she would have changed the time and method.
Its like this. Gu Ying and I are nning to continue heading north after things have settled down here. Our families are still waiting for us to return.
Thats right, its time to go back. You guys cant be helping us from the side for the rest of our lives. We still have to walk our own path in the future. Deng Feng looked a little lonely, and his smile was a little forced.
I just wanted to ask if youre willing toe with us, Brother Deng,
As soon as MO Ruyue finished speaking, Deng Feng raised his head instantly, and his eyes lit up.
Qin Lady Qin, are you really willing to take me away?
Deng Feng could not believe his ears. He could not help but ask again.
Yes, if youre willing, Ying and I are very willing to bring you along. You also know that I have five babies. When I go to a strange environment in the future, I wont be able to be by their side in time, so I still hope that there will be someone I trust by my side.
I think Brother Deng is a good match for you. If youre willing, that would be great.
MO Ruyue didnt just randomly find a reason. She had thought about it carefully.
Even if she and Gu Ying were to return to the sunlight and start living normal lives, an ordinary man would be guilty of treasuring a jade. Her medical skills and his martial arts were both coveted by people in the dark.
It was inevitable that there would be some situations that required their help, but she didnt want to drag her babies into this at all.
Deng Feng was in the prime of his life and had a lot of strength. With a little training from Gu Ying, he could totally be apetent bodyguard and coachman for the babies.
As for the Liu couple, they were old after all, so it was fine as long as they didnt have to work so hard and rush around in charge of the household affairs.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying discussed for a long time and also settled on many details.
As for the existence of space, he would not know about it now. As for the future, there might be such a day.
Im willing. Of course, Im willing to follow you two!
Deng Feng was about to be overwhelmed by this huge surprise
Among the people in the county, who didnt want to follow Lady Qin?
Although she seemed unapproachable and not to be trifled with, as long as she wanted to help someone, she would definitely help them to the end and would never give up halfway.
Everyone said in private that she was beautiful and kind, but she was actually a living Buddha.
After the natural disaster, it was not easy for anyone who had survived to live.
To be able to live on and follow his benefactor was something that Deng Feng would wake up smiling from his dreams.
Thats fine. Brother Deng, you dont have to address me like that anymore. Ill call you brother, and you can call me sister.
MO Ruyue had only had a lonely figure by her side since she was young. Now, she had cute babies, the Liu couple who were like parents to her, and also
Imperial Doctor Tian and the others who were good friends despite their age.
Now, she really wanted to know what it would feel like to have an elder brother.
How can I do that? You two are my benefactors. If it werent for you two, Im afraid I would have turned into a pile of bones by now. No, I cant do this. Deng Feng declined.
It would be good enough if he could stay by MO Ruyues side as a coachman or servant. Why did he have to call her sister?
He didnt even dare to think about it!
If Brother Deng is really not used to it, its fine. Youll get used to it slowly.
It was rare for MO Ruyue to show her humor in front of outsiders. Once she did, it meant that she had already treated the other party as one of her own.
Alright, Im leaving. Brother Deng, have a good rest. When things settle down here, well set off together.
MO Ruyue left with the bowl of medicine, leaving Deng Feng alone in the room, quietly digesting the news.
The night passed quietly.
Before dawn, almost all the survivors woke up.
It was already the spring equinox today. ording to the rules of previous years, they should be busy plowing and sowing at this time so that they could catch up with the first harvest of grain.
MO Ruyue also got up early. Her task today was not simple at all. She was going to help the survivors dig the ground.
In her space tool room, as long as there were enough raw materials, even space rockets could be built, not to mention all kinds of agricultural machinery.
However, she couldnt bring out things that were too advanced, so she could only make some improvements on the basis of the original tools.
Before improving the farm tools, MO Ruyue had to work in the fields himself to experience the use of various tools and the texture of thend. Only then could she quickly and urately make improved tools suitable for thisnd..
Chapter 416 - 416: A Great Humiliation
Chapter 416: A Great Humiliation
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Lady Qin, were familiar with doing farm work, how can we let you follow us to do this kind of dirty and tiring work!
An aunt pulled MO Ruyues hand and persuaded.
Yes, your hand is used to cure illnesses and save people, not to hold hoes and rakes.
Dont worry, well be staying here in the future. We will definitely farm well. The food and clothing given by others cant be taken care of for a lifetime, we still have to rely on ourselves.
Everyone was talking at the same time.
After this period of time, the survivors had almost be each others family.
Other than the person who couldnt put herself in the right ce and eventually eliminated herself, everyones hearts were twisted into a rope and they were all working hard in one direction.
When MO Ruyue heard these words, she was also very pleased.
Only a person who knew how to be grateful and knew how to be independent was worthy of her help.
This was also the reason why she couldnt let go of them and couldnt bear to leave them here.
Alright, I can understand everyones intentions. But today, Ill go with you guys to experience it. I dont know how to farm either, so I dont want to hold you guys back.
MO Ruyue tried every possible way to get this opportunity for herself. She carried her hoe and went down to the ground with everyone.
Gu Ying was riding on Little ck, following the way they came to get rid of traces.
Although that county magistrate was scared away by Mo Ruyue pretending to be a ghost, but in the face of survival, it was hard to guarantee that he would really give up on that evil idea.
It was only a few dozen miles from the small town to the small vige. Fortunately, the vige was also located in the mountains, and the small road leading to the vige was not eye-catching.
It shouldnt have been like this in the past, but a natural disaster had changed so much that even the terrain was different.
Even those who were familiar with the surrounding environment might not be able to find this small vige sessfully. It should be safe.
Thend outside the vige had be an ownerless wastnd, and it was filled with all kinds of stones of various sizes.
MO Ruyue had originally wanted to test the texture of the soil, but she didnt expect that she would only be concerned with moving stones in the fields today.
Fortunately, her physical fitness was not a problem at all. She was the kind of person who felt it was quite easy to run 20 kilometers with 50 pounds of weight.
Her body had been transformed by the spirit spring water and it had been a long time since she had experienced what it felt like to be physically exhausted.
The survivors looked at each other in dismay when they saw MO Ruyue pick up another stone the size of a small millstone, the kind that only two men could move.
What else could Lady Qin not do?
Gu Ying rode on Little ck and went out for 30 miles,pletely wiping away the traces left by the survivors.
When they evacuatedst night, the people at the back of the line had consciously cleaned up their traces. However, in the eyes of an expert like Gu Ying, even if there were only a few clues left, he could follow them to the vige.
When he passed by a small path, he suddenly realized that something seemed to be buried in the soil.
When he got closer, he realized that it was actually a person!
From the back, it was a woman with shoulder-length hair and a curvaceous figure.
However, Gu Ying wasnt the kind of person who would help when he saw injustice, especially when he knew it was a trap. He wouldnt take the initiative to jump into the pit.
He just sat on the horses back, quietly watching the womans performance.
He didnt save her, nor did he have any intention of leaving.
This stalemate continued for about the time it took for an incense stick to burn. The woman, who was half-buried in the ground, finally couldnt hold on any longer and let out a faint moan. The sound seemed to be reminding Gu Ying that she was still alive.
Gu Ying still didnt get off his horse, and even changed his posture.
The woman still did not hear any response. Her eyes moved a few times under her eyelids before she finally opened her eyes slowly.
Even though her face was dirty, one could still see that her facial features were very delicate, especially her eyes.
Her watery eyes were full of love, and the slightly raised corners of her eyes had a flirtatious look. When she nced over, it was as if she was throwing flirtatious eyes.
Ma Young Master, did you save me? She said weakly and stretched out her arm to Gu Ying.
No, l i m just passing by.
Gu Ying denied it directly, causing her to swallow her words back.
Although the woman could not see Gu Yings face clearly, just the haughty and arrogant posture of him sitting on the horse was enough to make her heart race.
Not to mention the smooth and three-dimensional outline of Gu Ying outside the mask. It was not difficult to imagine what kind of handsome face he would have under the mask.
Now that he opened his mouth, his deep and maic voice made the womans whole body go numb. Her pale face instantly blushed, and even herplexion looked much better.
Young Master, Im Whats going on? where am I? She asked again.
I dont know.
The answer this time was even shorter and more choking.
The womans chest was filled with anger, and she wanted to jump up and scold him. But when she looked at Gu Yings appearance and thought of his voice, her anger automatically dissipated.
Young Master, can you
I cant,
Gu Ying had already learned how to answer first, and before she could finish speaking, he had already given her an answer.
You still dont know what Im going to say, so why did you reject me? Young Master, do you really have a heart of stone? The woman said with tears in her eyes.
Her sorrowful voice, coupled with her teary eyes, and her pitiful look could easily make men intoxicated.
This pit is quite shallow, and I can see that you speak with confidence. I think you can get up by yourself.
Gu Ying had already made an exception to say such a long sentence. Originally, in the days of being an assassin in the blood tower, he would not even say a word for a long time.
Young Master, you
The woman in the pit waspletely helpless.
No matter what she said, no matter how pitiful she was, this man sat on the horses back, as steady as Mount Tai.
Could it be that he wasnt interested in women at all, but was interested in men ?
As this thought shed through her mind, the woman felt even worse.
With her looks, she was actually not as attractive as a man?
It was simply a great humiliation!
Gu Ying only needed to look at the expression in her eyes to know what she was thinking.
However, he didnt care about the thoughts of people other than MO Ruyue. As long as that person was MO Ruyue, he didnt care whether he loved a man or a woman.
Youre noting out? Ill be leaving then.
He pulled on the reins and turned his horse around. As expected, he patted his horse and rode away.
They were still more than ten miles away from the small town, so it wouldnt be a big problem even if they didnt clean up the traces behind.
Besides, he could also set up a diversion by forging some fake traces to mislead others. This way, the safety factor of the small vige would be higher.
Just as he was leaving, the woman climbed out of the pit. She patted the dust off her body and shouted, Young Master, Young Master, I can reallye out.
Please do me a favor and take me with you!
It was fine if she didnt shout. Gu Ying was still riding his horse slowly.
As she shouted, he whipped his horse and galloped away.
The woman was dumbfounded. She looked at the dust left behind by the lonely figure and couldnt figure out what he was thinking.
So, did he see through the trap, or did he choose toe in and watch the show, and then y with her. Then run away?
Chapter 417 - 417: Shelter From The Rain
Chapter 417: Shelter From The Rain
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The woman seemed to have just realized what was going on, and her eyes, which were staring into the distance, suddenly became sinister.
You dare to trick me, huh? Hmph, the next time I see you, Ill make you kneel under my pomegranate skirt, and then Ill dump you!
No, of course well talk about it after we use it well. Im still a little heartbroken to get rid of such a top-grade man like this.
Slutty woman, are you smitten again after seeing a pretty boy? That man looks like a fat sheep, and the horse hes riding is definitely of the highest quality. Its possible that hes going to sell it for ten million taels of gold!
A few men came out from behind rocks, trees, and even a few other holes
covered with camouges. The leader was a fat, dark-skinned man, who said sourly, Dont meddle in my business! That man had already seen through your trick, so he didnt get down from the horse to save me! If it wasnt for you, I would have already had a good time with him!
The womans expression changed, and her original delicate and innocent look disappeared in an instant, reced by a bold and unrestrained look.
F*ck, if big brother wasnt here, we wouldnt have let that kid run away!
Thats right, I say, Xin Niangzi, you keep it for yourself, dont think that Boss can always indulge you. If you go too far and the boss turns hostile, dont me us for not warning you!
A dark and skinny man chimed in.
Although he was short, he was born with a fierce look, especially his pair of triangr eyes, which gave off an ominous glint. No one dared to look down on him because of his height.
Mind your own business. You havent even understood how to live your life. Where do you have the time to worry about others?
The woman said indifferently, as if she was not worried that the men would do anything to her in their anger.
In fact, they really did not dare to.
This was their boss woman, and the words scheming like a snake were not enough to describe her.
She was the bosss precious baby. It would be good enough if they didnt fall for her schemes and suffer a fate worse than death. Who would dare to have any ideas about her?
Unless they didnt want to live anymore!
After Gu Ying left the Mountain Valley, he headed in another direction.
He made some guiding traces. If someone really followed the traces, they would be led in other directions.
There was no tail following him. It seemed that the people who set up the trap had some eyesight and had already smelled something from his behavior, so they did not rashly follow him.
However, Gu Ying did not intend to let those people go. Sooner orter, they would be a hidden danger for the survivors, so it was better to eliminate this hidden danger now.
On the way back, Gu Ying specially returned to the ce where those people had set up an ambush and found traces of no less than eight people
There arent many people here. They dont have any injuries, and it seems like theyre not hungry.
He carefully identified the traces and made some conclusions.
The people who ambushed him were all strong men, except for that woman.
Gu Ying didnt follow the tracks immediately. Instead, he went to the big ck horse first, took off his shirt, tied it to the horses reins, and made a special knot.
Alright, bring my news back.
He patted the big ck horses neck and pointed in the direction of the small mountain vige. The horse immediately nodded, snorted, and galloped away.
This time, Gu Ying followed the traces left behind by the robbers and went in another direction.
Although he was fast, he had to stop from time to time to carefully distinguish the direction.
The weather had started to warm up, and the South was about to enter a rainy day. The rain had started to increase.
The sun had been shining brightly just a moment ago, but now there was ayer of dark clouds.
The wind started to blow on the ground, and it looked like it was going to rain again.
Once the rain fell, the remaining traces would be washed away, and it would take some effort to find those people again.
Gu Ying quickened his pace. Fortunately, those people did not split up at the end, but moved together. This way, the footprints they left behind and other clues were clearer, which saved him a lot of effort.
Before the first drop of rain fell, he finally found where the group of people had settled down.
It was in another vige ten miles to the East. It was also an abandoned vige, but it was far lessplete than the one where the survivors had settled down.
There were only twenty-odd families in the vige. When the natural disaster came, only a few could escape.
There were only five or six rtively intact houses left in the entire vige. The rest were all broken walls.
Gu Ying didnt enter the vige rashly. Instead, he carefully observed the
surrounding environment and found a high vantage point, ready to explore the situation.
However, when he reached there, he found that there were already people guarding it.
It seemed that these people were not ordinary disaster victims, but mountain bandits who had been in the grass for a long time. That was why they had such a sense of defense.
However, to Gu Ying, dealing with an open sentry wasnt a difficult thing.
The one guarding it was a man with a full beard. He was leaning against a big rock in boredom, nibbling on a cold piece of ice.
Damn it, theyre having a good time down there, and I have to stand guard here. Now its raining, and Im going to be drenched!
He was cursing and swearing. He was so bored that he could only kick the gravel on the ground to vent his anger.
Perhaps there were not enough people at the foot of the mountain, or perhaps they felt that in the current situation, the government could not even take care of themselves and would note to find trouble with them, so such an important position was only guarded by the bearded man.
It was originally a forest, but now the trees had been burnt, leaving only dark branches.
The bearded man had no ce to shelter himself from the rain, and there was nothing around him to shelter him. As he said, if the rain got heavier, he would definitely be drenched.
In a short while, the rain gradually began to get heavier, from a drizzling rain to a needle-like drizzle.
Although it wouldnt get peoplepletely wet, the wet clothes and the cold air of thete spring would make people feel extremely ufortable.
The bearded man couldnt sit still after sitting for a while, so he got up and prepared to move to another ce.
He didnt dare to return to the vige. If he left his post and was caught by the boss, he wouldnt have a good ending.
He could only find a ce to hide from the rain within the range where he could still see the situation of the vige below.
With this move, he picked the hiding spot of Gu Ying.
Two protruding stones were pressed against each other, forming a narrow space. The stone eaves that extended out created a small space. In the case of the rain not being heavy, it waspletely possible to temporarily shelter from the rain.
When Gu Ying saw the bearded mans body, he had already predicted his intentions. He preemptively dodged and jumped into the bearded mans blind spot under the cover of the stone.
Then, he went behind him and knocked him out with a hand knife.
The bearded man had only taken half a step when his vision turned ck and he fell head first. Then, he woke up with a sharp pain from his renzhong acupoint.
He found himself lying on the ground, and a man wearing a half-mask was staring down at him..
Chapter 418 - 418: A Disaster
Chapter 418: A Disaster
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
His blurry vision gradually became clear. The bearded man wanted to get up, but the man stepped on his shoulder and kicked him back down.
You, why is it you! You Where did youe from?
He suddenly realized that the half-masked man was the one they had set up an ambush for but failed to catch.
But didnt he leave on his horse a long time ago?
Why did she suddenly appear in front of him?
You were one of those people just now, right?
Gu Ying said Chen Shu Ju.
If the bearded man had not seen him just now, he would not have shown such a surprised expression and said such a thing.
Who, who knows who you are! If you want whats good for you, immediately let me up!
The bearded man immediately denied it and even said some harsh words.
However, the trembling in his voice revealed that he was not confident.
Answer my question.
Gu Ying didnt want to talk nonsense with him and gave a straight ball.
Bullshit!
The bearded man had just cursed when he exerted a little force on his foot that was on his chest.
Crack! A crisp sound was heard, and his eyes immediately widened. Before he could let out a scream, his mouth was blocked by the unfinished red packet.
Gu Ying directly stepped on him and broke two of his ribs. The easiest way to make such a person speak less nonsense was to hurt him!
The bearded man was in so much pain that his hands and feet were spasming. He instinctively wanted to curl up, but the foot on his chest was like a huge rock, making him breathless. Even his hands and feet had lost their strength.
Answer my question.
Gu Ying repeated again. This time, beard only hesitated for a moment before breaking another two ribs.
With tears in his eyes, the bearded man looked at Gu Ying and shook his head frantically.
He said it. He would say anything, alright?!
How many of you are there? How skilled are you? How are the members allocated?
Gu Ying asked the questions he wanted to know the most, and then slightly applied pressure on the bearded mans wound.
Dont even think about shouting for warning, or youll die even faster!
The bearded man looked into his cold eyes. He had no doubt that the masked man was not threatening him, but really would kill him in an instant.
WUWUWU
His mouth was blocked by the steamed bun, so he could only use his eyes to signal and make a sound of agreement from his throat.
Gu Ying kicked the steamed bun out of the bearded mans mouth with the tip of his foot and stepped on his chest again.
There are 15 of us in total. Boss is the best. Hes as strong as a tiger and a leopard. We havent met any opponents yet.
Among us. only two or three of us can take two moves from Boss. As for the others, theres no need to even mention them.
There are a few rooms below that can be considered to beplete, and thats where we brothers live. The mostplete courtyard in the middle is Eldest Brother and Eldest Sister-inws courtyard. Only the two of them live there.
The bearded man really didnt want to say a word, and if he annoyed Gu Ying, he would be stomped to death, so he simply poured out the beans.
Sister-inw, shes the bait in charge of deceiving people?
The moment Gu Ying thought of the woman who was half-buried in the pit, he realized that she did have a pitiful face.
Yes, shes the third in our group. Ever since she followed big brother, she gave her position to someone else. We can only call her big sister-inw.
The bearded man said everything he knew, wishing he could say that he didnt know, as long as the lonely shadow didnt kill him.
How long have you been here? What have you been relying on to survive?
Gu Ying asked another extremely sharp question. This made the bearded man shut his mouth instantly and he avoided eye contact.
Seeing him like this, Gu Ying seemed to understand something and didnt continue to ask. Instead, he didnt hesitate to step down.
Pfft!
A sound simr to a balloon exploding was heard. The bearded mans chest caved in deeply, and white bone fragments poked out from under his skin.
Caught off guard, the bearded mans heart was crushed by the lone shadows foot, and he died almost instantly.
His eyes were still filled with shock, and his pupils had already begun to dte, gradually losing their vitality.
Gu Ying didnt look at the bearded man again. He just rubbed the sole of his shoe against his body and frowned slightly.
He had no emotional fluctuations about getting rid of the bearded man. Such a person would only be a disaster in this world, and he would only harm more people.
This could be considered as helping the heavens.
Although the bearded man didnt exin the source of their survival, Gu Ying had already vaguely guessed it.
Whether it was the woman from before or this bearded man, their faces were in good condition and even had a red glow.
This was definitely not something that could be obtained just by eating food, it must be meat.
After such a natural disaster, people didnt even have time to escape, so how could they care about livestock? Where did the meate from?
In the past, when Gu Ying epted missions, he only had eyes for the target of the mission, and there was no distinction between good and evil.
But now, he didnt mind acting as the righteous messenger of the heavenly path.
After obtaining some simple information, Gu Ying looked at the entire viges terrain andyout again, remembering it in his heart. Then, he turned around and went down the mountain, not even looking back at the corpse on the ground.
In Gu Yings eyes, a dozen or so bandits running around could be dealt with with a few punches and kicks. He didnt even need to use his weapon.
However, to cut the grass, one must remove the roots. Since he wanted to eliminate this hidden danger, he had to ensure that no fish escaped the.
That was why he had looked up just now to determine the possible locations of the dozen or so thieves.
After taking down this high point, he could clearly see that there was a sentry post in front and behind the vige. The rest of the thieves were hiding in their houses to avoid the rain.
The boss of the bandits was indeed very cautious. Even though there were only a dozen of them, they were not careless in their defense. They were able to assign three people to upy three important sentry positions.
Gu Ying came down from the mountain and went directly to the back of the vige. He first pulled out the hidden sentries at the back and then dealt with the one in front of the vige entrance.
Just like that, the two eyes and ears were quietly removed. The rainy day became the perfect cover, and the thieves in the vige did not realize that a disaster had quietly arrived.
In line with the principle of capturing the leader first, the first person the lonely shadow went to was naturally the boss.
He was also the one with the highestbat strength among these people. As long as he was eliminated, the rest of them could be said to be a te of loose sand, and there was nothing to fear.
Gu Ying sneaked into the courtyard in the middle. He could hear an indescribable sounding from inside.
It was something that these bandits could do.
From the two courtyards on the left and right, there were also faint cries of women. It was probably because the weather was too bad today and there was nothing to do in the house, so they thought of this way to have fun.
Although Gu Ying was a cold-blooded killer, he also hated two kinds of people the most.
One was a copper refiner, and the other was a rapist.
As long as he met someone, even if it was a potential customer who gave him a mission, he would send the customer to hell after hepleted the mission.
Because of this unspoken rule, he became famous in the assassin circle in another way.
As long as someone vited his taboo and was found out by him, they would definitely not live for more than three days. Regardless of whether they were peers or investors, he would kill them without hesitation..
Chapter 419 - 419: The Bandit Couple
Chapter 419: The Bandit Couple
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Just as Gu Ying was about to climb over the wall and take care of the bandit leader, a huge hole suddenly attracted his attention.
There were at least seven or eight bones in the pit, and some were buried under it. It was hard to determine the number.
The moment he saw the white bones, his previous conjectures were all confirmed.
As expected, it was because of this that the bandits were able to survive.
The killing intent in Gu Yings eyes grew stronger, and the expression on his face grew colder.
He didnt even bother to hide his hostility, and he didnt even care that he would alert the other bandits.
In his heart, these people were no longer worthy of being called humans. They were even worse than animals. Each of them had been marked with thebel of certain death.
Even if someone managed to escape, he swore that he would hunt them down to the ends of the earth!
The flirtatious sounds in the room continued as if they didnt notice that a murderous fiend was already in front of them.
Gu Ying suddenly twisted his toes and rushed out.
The next second, the back window of the house was knocked open, and a man in disheveled clothes came out of the window. He rolled on the ground, then got up and ran out without looking back.
No matter how fast his reaction was, he couldnt be faster than Gu Ying.
A ck shadow arrived first even though it had movedter. Its five fingers were slightly open, and it directly grabbed the back of the neck of the person in front of it.
The man made a sharp turn and continued to run in the other direction, shouting without looking back, Who are you? Let me go, and I will repay your kindness in the future!
Gu Ying didnt reply at all. He squatted slightly, twisted his waist, and doubled his speed. He directly predicted the path of that person, and his fingers twisted the back of his neck.
With a light ka sound) the limbs of the person who was running went soft and he immediately fell forward. He used the inertia to rush forward a few steps and then fell to the ground.
His arms were like noodles. He couldnt support his body at all and fell straight down. His face was instantly covered in blood.
Gu Ying stepped forward and used the tip of his foot to lift the mans shoulder, turning him over.
Its you! What did you do to me?!
The man lying on the ground was in his thirties. He had long eyebrows, a long face, and thin lips. He looked sinister and ruthless.
The moment he saw Gu Ying, he immediately realized that this person hade to seek revenge.
It seemed that this time. they had not only provoked a tough one. but also a fiend who urged them to die.
Brother, I was blind to have offended you. I dont ask for anything else, but please be magnanimous and spare my life! In the future, you will be at my beck and call without any objections!
The long-faced man tried to beg for mercy again, but when he looked at the other partys cold eyes that did not hide the killing intent, he realized that he was probably doomed today.
You deserve to die. Gu Ying said.
He had just crushed the back of the long-faced mans neck, controlling his strength to paralyze him but not to the extent of killing him.
To this kind of animal, letting him die instantly was simply letting him off too lightly.
Stop pretending. Who doesnt want to live a better life in this world? After the natural disaster, it will be a chaotic world. Only those who have the ability can survive. Are you going to watch yourself starve to death?
The long-faced man knew that it was useless to beg for mercy, but he was not willing to die like this, so he couldnt help but defend himself loudly.
Im stronger than you. If I want you to die, you have to die.
Gu Ying didnt try to reason with him, but directly used his logic and pped his face with his words.
The long-faced man choked and couldnt think of any reason to refute.
Wheres the food? Where did you get it?
Gu Ying saw the bearded man eating ravenously, and it was even made of white flour. He knew that these bandits must have gotten some food, otherwise, they would not be sofortable using this ce as a stronghold.
Even if they had other sources of food, they would run out eventually, unless they were prepared to eat this food in the future and constantly plunder to replenish their supplies.
Let me go and Ill tell you.
The long-faced man still tried to make ast-ditch attempt, but the lonely shadow did not give him the chance to bargain.
Then go to hell.
He broke the long-faced mans jaw to prevent him from biting his tongue tomit suicide. Then he dragged him to a tree in the yard and tied him to it.
While he was dealing with the long-faced man, GuYing kept an eye on the
room.
It waspletely silent inside. If it wasnt for the fact that he could hear the forced soft breathing, he would have thought that the person inside had already escaped or died.
The woman who had ambushed him was very cunning. She had even hidden in the room and looked out through the crack of the window.
The lonely shadow then walked into the house. There was a slight movement inside, and soon, the sound of a womans suppressed crying could be heard.
He kicked the door open and a lustful smell hit him in the face, causing him to take a step back to avoid it.
The crying inside seemed to be a little louder, sorrowful and resentful, with tears and blood in the voice. Just hearing the sound and seeing no one, one couldnt help but feel a trace of tenderness toward the beauty.
Gu Ying waited until the smell in the room dissipated a little before entering.
A woman was lying on the ground with her clothes in a mess. She was wrapped in ayer of torn bedding. It looked like she had wrapped herself up, but her snow-white shoulders and calves were exposed.
That half-covered and half-exposed appearance was even more attractive than beingpletely naked.
When she heard the sound of footsteps, she immediately curled up into a ball again and pretended to be extremely frightened.
Wheres the food? Where did you get it?
Gu Ying repeated the question he asked the long-faced man, as if he had not seen it.
What What food?
The woman raised her head in confusion, and a tear fell from her eye. Coupled with her messy ck hair, red eyes, and nose, she looked so pitiful and fragile that most men would instantly fall for her.
However, Gu Ying was one of the minority.
In his eyes, other than MO Ruyue, he would not take in any other woman. Therefore, the woman in front of him had only been ying the zither to the cow.
Do you see him?
If you dont want to be like him, then tell me the truth. Gu Ying pointed
UUL31Ue.
The long-faced mans jaw was dislocated, and he was tied to a tree with his mouth wide open.
Due to his high paraplegia, his four limbs drooped limply. Even though he was tied up with a rope, he was still falling.
I I really dont know what youre talking about. I was kidnapped by them.
That animal He has harmed so many of our sisters
The woman didnt say much before she covered her face and sobbed again. She was also using this as an excuse to avoid the question of Gu Ying.
Right, I remember seeing you just now! Youre the young master who just passed by!
She had only faked a few sobs when she suddenly raised her head again and started to get close to Gu Ying.
Im sorry, I was forced by them just now. I didnt really want to harm you. Please believe me! I also wanted to ask you for help, but I couldnt find the opportunity.
Its a good thing that Young Master didnt fall for it in the end. Otherwise, if I had harmed Young Master, I would never be able to rest in peace.
Shut up!
Gu Ying interrupted her impatiently.
This time, he simply didnt ask anymore. He went forward and pulled off the messy bedding, then tied the woman up from head to toe, and also removed her chin.
If you dont want to tell the truth, then you dont have to say anything.
Even if he didnt go through the bandit couple, he would find the answer through other means..
Chapter 420 - 420: A Dead End
Chapter 420: A Dead End
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The daysex in the courtyard next to it finally stopped. The womans crying suddenly became clear, apanied by the sound of dragging and struggling.
The woman who had been humiliated must have been dragged out of the house.
Gu Ying had already determined the location of the remaining bandits by listening to their voices.
He first chose the house with thergest number of people, and simrlyunched a surprise attack with his ghostly movement technique.
The mountain bandits in the courtyard were grinning in satisfaction. They raised their machetes and shed at the woman who was pushed to the ground.
A cold light shed, and a head shot up into the sky, spewing hot blood four to five meters high, making it look like a rain of blood for a few meters.
The woman was so scared that she trembled, and her eyes almost popped out. She couldnt make a sound with her wide-open mouth. She choked on the blood that had sshed into her mouth, and then vomited and coughed violently.
It was only then that the headless body fell to the ground, shaking. Its limbs twitched as it made its final struggle.
The bandits who had been surrounding them were all stunned. They could not imagine why theirrade would raise his sword and slit his own throat. There was no more meat in the kitchen. In order to maintain his energy, he had to ensure that he had enough meat.
Therefore, after they had their fun, this woman was left with onest value.
The knife was clearly aimed at the woman, so why did it suddenly bounce up and kill the other person on the spot?
Before the stunned brigands could react, a figure had already shed in front of them. Everyones neck made a crack sound, and in the next second, they all fell to the ground like sandbags.
Gu Ying didnt take their lives directly, but mimicked the way he dealt with the mountain bandit boss, turning them all into high paraplegics.
This group of animals didnt deserve to live, and of course, they didnt deserve to die in pain.
The vomiting woman finally recovered. Just as she was about to scream, the man who had attacked the mountain bandit squatted in front of her and covered her mouth.
Save your strength to tie them up and stuff their mouths, understand?
Being stared at by those dark eyes, the woman gradually quieted down and nodded hesitantly.
Although the man in front of her was full of killing intent, he had only dealt with the mountain bandits and did not show any malice towards her.
The woman still couldnt believe that she was really saved, but his words seemed to have a magical power that made her instinctively choose to believe it.
Gu Ying then went to another courtyard and ended the battle in the shortest time possible.
After the time it takes for an incense stick to burn, Gu Ying looked at the four delicate women standing in front of him and couldnt help but frown.
These four women were obviously pampered, but judging from the skin on their faces and hands, they were all very delicate. They were definitely not the daughters of rural families who were used to doing family affairs.
Even if they were from amoners family, they would not have such fine skin. They must havee from a rich family who had been robbed by these bandits on the way to escape.
Two of the five women had been tortured to the point of insanity. Although they were saved, they were still smiling foolishly and talking to themselves.
They did not know how many days they had been hungry, but their cheeks were deeply sunken.
Except for the two women who had been raped, who seemed to have been washed in advance and looked cleaner, the other three were unkempt and had an unpleasant smell.
How did you get captured?
Gu Ying asked the woman he had saved first.
Benefactor, when we were fleeing with our families, we also helped a poor woman. Not long after, we were stopped and robbed. All the property and food we brought were robbed, and our families They all died under the butchers knife!
They That group of bastards didnt even let go of the corpses! It was said to be air-dried they were air-dried in case of an emergency.
Although the woman was still trembling after the shock, she exined the whole situation clearly.
As expected, the mountain bandits had sent the woman to scout the area first and make a move after confirming the target.
The womans tearfulints made the other twos eyes turn red. They lowered their heads, andrge drops of tears fell.
The other two younger sisters witnessed the tragic death of their loved ones and were After her innocence was vited, she became a little delirious.
Theyre both young and pretty.
Those bastards said, said Since Im not sick of them yet, Im going to have some fun with them. Ill deal with themter.
The women added on one after another, and Gu Ying listened quietly. Even if he had already guessed the whole process in his heart, the effect of hearing it with his own ears was still different.
He didnt show any anger, but his eyes became colder.
He had seen many things more tragic than this, and he had long been able to keep his true emotions in and not show them in front of others.
He knew that it was impossible for this group of women to know where the stolen goods were hidden, so he didnt bother to ask.
Just as he stood up and was about to leave, the first woman he saved suddenly called out to him.
Benefactor, youre leaving already? Can you Can you take us along?
She seemed to know that this request was unreasonable, but they were a group of weak women. They didnt have the strength to truss a chicken, nor did they have money or food to support them. Even if they were saved now, they probably wouldnt live for long.
The man in front of her was very skilled, and she had seen with her own eyes how he had easily dealt with those terrifying mountain bandits.
If they could stay by his side, they would definitely be able to survive.
Therefore, she could only thicken her face and beg Gu Ying to save her until the end.
Gu Ying frowned. Like MO Ruyue, he hated troublesome people the most.
Dealing with these mountain bandits was also to eliminate the hidden danger in the mountain vige where the survivors lived.
As for saving this group of women, it was just a side effect.
I dont have time to escort you.
Gu Ying gave a disappointing answer.
If you dont take us with you, well be dead.
The woman continued to plead.
To her, Gu Ying was herst straw of hope. Other than holding on to him tightly, she did not know what else she could do.
However, to her disappointment, there was only coldness in the mans eyes. He was not moved at all.
Benefactor
Benefactor, I beg you, please take us with you! No, even if its just me, its fine!
The other woman who had been rescued suddenly pushed her away and pounced in front of Gu Ying, reaching out to hug his thigh.
However, she missed and fell to the ground. The man with the half-mask didnt seem to move at all, but his body moved back a distance.
Get lost!
Gu Ying coldly rebuked.
Not everyone was worth saving. At least, this woman who betrayed herpanions at all costs in order to survive was immediately eliminated by him..
Chapter 421 - 421: Astonishing Wealth
Chapter 421: Astonishing Wealth
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
This time, he didnt hesitate and returned to the courtyard.
All the bandits were tied up and thrown into the yard. They were all gathered in a pile in front of the boss.
Even if they werent tied up, they were already paralyzed and couldnt move at all.
The moment Gu Ying appeared, almost all of the bandits felt like shivering.
However, they had lost all feeling from their necks down. The fear they felt in their minds could not be expressed in their limbs.
In order to prevent them from biting their tongues tomit suicide, Gu Ying had deliberately dislocated all the mountain bandits jaws. Of course, there was also a reason why he didnt want to listen to their nonsenseo
The rain had started to get heavier, and the person at the bottom was the most miserable His face had already sunk into the mud, and he could only lift his head with all his might, but he could not exert any strength at all. His neck could not hold on for long, and he would fall back into the mud again. Only a few people who were pressed in the mud had no time to care about their fear. They only thought about how they could not suffocate to death in the mud.
Gu Ying didnt even look at them and started to search the courtyard.
Judging from the bandit bosss reaction, he would definitely not put food and gold out of his sight.
In the face of a natural disaster, the only way to be safe was to hold the item in his own hands.
Although the bandits were afraid of his strength, there must be small gangs among them. If any of them stole a part of it, it would be a loss that was difficult to make up.
Although he didnt get any useful information from the bandit boss, as long as he followed the mans personality and logical thinking, he wouldnt deviate from the general direction.
Everything must have been hidden in this courtyard, and it wouldnt get wet from the rain. It was also right under their eyes, so it must be in a few rooms.
This courtyard was thergest and most well-preserved in the entire vige. It should be the house of a rich family in the vige.
The cer on the surface might have been modified to be waterproof and damp-proof, but it was in the yard after all, and it did not meet the conditions right in front of their eyes.
The bandit boss was also very alert, but there was a saying.
It was hard to guard against house thieves.
He was a thief himself, so how could he guard against thieves every day?
So after eliminating many options, the main house was the only choice.
Gu Ying walked towards the main house, observing the brigand leaders reaction from the corner of his eye.
Although the man was tied to a tree and his head was lowered, his hearing was still there, and he sharply sensed that the footsteps of Gu Ying were heading towards the main house.
He also knew that Gu Ying must have gone to find food and valuables. These were thest bargaining chip he had to save his life. Even if he couldnt save his life, he couldnt let this fiend who came to find him benefit for nothing.
So even though the footsteps were stepping on his heart, the bandit leader still lowered his head, trying to stop himself from looking up, afraid that his expression would reveal his secret.
However, his actions were all within Gu Yings calctions. The more he pretended not to care, the more it proved that he had found the right direction.
Gu Yings grasp of the human heart had already reached a certain level. If he didnt be an assassin, he could easily be a leading professional in the industry as a counselor.
So he didnt stop and went straight into the main house.
ording to the victims description, the bandits had robbed more than one or two houses, and they had been doing this for more than a day or two.
The food that they had plundered had been consumed all this time, but the gold and silver had been umted, so it must have been arge number.
Although Gu Ying didnt care about the money, there was no need to just bury it here.
He couldnt bring the women who were victims back to the survivors vige, so he could only give them some money and food and send them on their way.
As for whether or not these things would bring them another fatal disaster, that was not something he could control.
Everyone had their own fate, and it all depended on their luck.
He carefully walked around the room, and the first thing he saw was the bed.
This was not an ordinary wooden bed or a mud-fire kang.
Such a bed was exquisitely carved, cumbersome to make, and had a long period of time. Most importantly, there was enough space at the bottom of the bed to ce some items.
The brigand leader was the most skilled person among all the brigands. He didnt need to personally appear in the usual plundering, and just the number of people was enough to deal with the ordinary people.
Therefore, he would definitely put the stolen goods in the safest ce.
Where else could be safer than the step-by-step bed he had been guarding?
GuYing came to the side of the bed and pushed aside a few wooden ids under the bed. He also pulled out some clothes and bedding that were used as a cover. As expected, a few boxes were piled in the innermost area.
The boxes were of different sizes, and they were tightly stuck to the innermost part. Visually, it seemed that the space inside wasrger, far beyond the size of the stepbed.
He raised his head to look at the spot between the bed and the wall, and sure enough, there was an inconspicuous gap in the middle.
It seemed that there was a mezzanine behind the wall, and the heavy stepbed was the best cover.
Gu Ying walked to the head of the bed, grabbed a horizontal wooden block with one hand, and easily pulled the bed a distance away.
He deliberately made a hugemotion to tell the brigand leader that he had discovered the secret of the mezzanine.
The sound of the wooden bed being dragged could be heard. The brigand leader, who had his head lowered, suddenly raised his head and stared at the door, trying to see what was happening in the room.
However, the only thing he could move now was his head. He couldnt even struggle.
Gu Ying heard the muffled groan from outside, but he didnt stop what he was doing.
He pushed the entire bed away and pulled out a few boxes.
Each chest was heavy, and after they were opened one by one, what was revealed was an astonishing amount of wealth.
Silk and satin, gold and silver, jewelry, antiques, and jade
The bandits had indeed chosen the fat sheep. In the face of such a natural disaster, those who could still bring these things out were not ordinary rich families.
Gu Ying touched his chin and looked at these things with difficulty.
If it was just some gold and silver, it would be fine. Every woman who suffered would get a little.
It would be easier for them to hide, and they would not be so conspicuous.
However, the other antiques and jades were not small at all. How could they be exchanged for money under such circumstances?
He didnt want to attract the coveting eyes of some people before he could get the money, and once again push these women into the fire pit.
Forget it, lets find the food first, then well talk about the rest.
Gu Ying missed MO Ruyues space very much. This was simply a mobile storage warehouse. As long as he threw it in, he would be free of worries.
Now that its raining so heavily, the drought in thend can be alleviated to a certain extent. It should be easier to plow thend and sow the seeds.
Gu Ying muttered to himself.
The earlier he settled the matter of the survivors vige, the earlier he could start a new journey with MO Ruyue..
Chapter 422 - 422: Heiress
Chapter 422: Heiress
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The grain was quickly dug out.
The brigand leader directly plundered a fewplete wooden cabs and ced them against the wall. He only needed to walk over and open the cab door to see them.
It had to be said that he was extremely confident in his own martial strength, which was why he could ce the food like this without hiding it.
The sacks of grain included rice, flour, and all kinds of coarse grain. It looked like there was a wide variety.
In the disaster area where no one could find food, this food was much more valuable than gold.
Gu Ying closed the cab door again and prepared to find a carriage
He had already carefully observed from the high ground just now. There were a few carriages parked in a half-broken yard behind the vige, enough for him to transport the food and property back.
Before that, he still needed to give some of them to the women he had saved. Of course, he wouldnt let them all take away.
Although these women were also victims of the robbery, who had the food and wealth? It was a bad debt now, and who could calcte it clearly?
Moreover, a group of women carrying grain, gold, and silver in a carriage was already a fat sheep in the eyes of others, and they would probably die even faster.
Gu Yings movements were very swift, and he quickly returned with thergest carriage.
The rain continued to fall, but it was a little lighter than before, and the sky darkened.
Unknowingly, night was about to fall.
At this time, the outside was already a muddy tidal t, and Gu Ying would not take such a big risk to rush back to the vige overnight.
He had already asked Big ck to go back and send a message. It would not be a problem even if he stayed outside for the night.
Gu Ying unloaded the horses and parked the carriage at the foot of the wall. He was prepared to rest for the night and set off with the seized supplies the next day.
As soon as he walked into the house with his horse, he saw a few women supporting each other and hiding from the rain under the eaves, waiting for him at the same time.
Benefactor, youre back!
The first person to speak was the woman who had been saved first.
At that time, she imed that her surname was Xu, that she was already married, and that her husbands surname was Lin.
Gu Ying raised an eyebrow in response.
These women were not hiding from the rain in other houses, but instead came to him hand in hand. It seemed that they had a favor to ask of him.
Benefactor, its alreadyte. I thought it was time to make dinner. I didnt want to starve you, so I brought my sisters here to see if there was anything I could help with.
Lin Xu had clearly recovered and was now speaking in an orderly manner. She clearly had other thoughts, but she did not say it out loud. Instead, she found a seemingly appropriate excuse.
Gu Ying could tell what she was trying to do, and he instinctively felt disgusted.
As victims, they had already suffered a lot of abuse and torture. Now that they were rescued, it was normal for them to want to fill their stomachs or find someone to rely on to escape from the devils den.
However, using others as an excuse to try to satisfy ones own needs in a roundabout way was very disgusting.
Im not hungry.
Gu Ying waved his hand and led the horse to the stable on the other side of the yard.
With his current physical fitness, it wouldnt be a problem for him to go hungry for three days and three nights, let alone not eating a single meal.
How can we do that!
Lin Xu immediately grew anxious.
You have to eat, especially now that the weather is cold and humid. If you dont eat, how can your body take it?
Thats right, benefactor. Its not like we dont do anything. We can still cook simple meals as long as you dont mind.
Another woman who was clear-headed agreed.
As for the two young women who had already lost their minds, they just smiled foolishly, bit their fingers, and hid behind the three women who were sober. They even shouted, Food, Im hungry.
Although Gu Ying didnt like Lin Xus schemes, he didnt want these women to go hungry.
He tied the horse in silence and returned to the main house. When he came out, he had a bag in his hand.
Just cook what you want to eat. Dont worry about me.
There were also a few small bags in the bag, which were filled with rice, flour, and coarse grain. It was enough to cook three days worth of food for five people, let alone a meal.
When Lin Xu took the bag, she couldnt help but nce into the main house, then quickly looked away.
Her small movements did not escape Gu Yings eyes, but he did not make any indication. He only went to the woodshed and took out a bunch of grass, preparing to cover the carriage.
In the yard, other than the brigands stacked on top of each other, there were also brigands tied to trees. The brigands at the bottom were already dead. They were squeezed into the mud, and several heavy bodies were stacked on top of them, which had long suffocated them.
Gu Ying didnt care about the life and death of those beasts, he only cared about his own matters.
The rescued women had already gone to cook.
They didnt choose the nearest kitchen. Instead, they stayed far away from these few kitchens and went to find a house that was badly damaged. They set up a fire to cook in the half-open kitchen.
Gu Ying thought for a moment and understood their intentions.
The kitchen in the courtyard reeked of blood. They knew very well what had happened in the kitchen, so how could they have used a stove pot that was stained with some kind of oil to cook?
However, these women were pampered daughters of rich families. Even if they had experience in cooking, they had never set the stove on fire.
Just the task of starting a fire had made her busy for a long time. She was covered in dust and dirt, but she still couldnt start a fire.
Sister-inw Lin, why dont we beg our benefactor again? Hes a man, and his hands and feet are so nimble, hell definitely be able to start a fire very quickly.
Another woman came over and suggested.
She was the one who had told Gu Ying before that she wanted him to take them with him, but she was not married yet. She had only promised someone and had not married him yet.
Sister Tian, our benefactor is a man after all. Its not convenient for him.
Weve already troubled him too much, so its better not to look for him again.
Lin Xu had other ns in mind. She didnt want to lose the big picture for a small gain.
Sister-inw Lin, our benefactor has already saved us once. As the saying goes, Help Buddha to the end, so we should do a good deed to the end. Is he going to just watch us starve and freeze?
At most, well reward him more after we get back our property.
Madam Tian had just been saved, and she couldnt wait to reveal her original personality of a rich youngdy. Her face was as if it was a matter of course, and there was no trace of the embarrassment of suffering.
Lin Xu gave her a deep look but did not say anything. She only used the excuse of getting some firewood to add to the fire and quietly put some distance between them.
The firewood that had been piled up in the woodshed was already damp. It could not be raised for a long time, and even ck smoke was rising. No matter how much Lin Xu tried, the me was extinguished as soon as it was ced into the stove.
Mrs. Lin, how much longer are you going to do this? Were going to starve to death!
After talking for a long time, Madam Tian had been simply brushed off by Lin Xu, so she had long been impatient and kept urging.
Why dont you start the fire, and Ill go make the steamed buns.
Lin Xu immediately put down the hook in her hand. Although she was smiling, there was no trace of a smile in her eyes.
How can I do this kind of dirty work, you better do it.
Madam Tian pursed her lips,pletely unaware that she had unintentionally offended her.
Starting a fire is a dirty work?
Lin Xus eyes narrowed when she heard this..
Chapter 423 - 423: Turtle Breathing Technique
Chapter 423: Turtle Breathing Technique
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Perhaps it was because she could hear the unkind tone in her voice, Madam Tian exined unwillingly, Aiya, Im just casually saying. Arent the servants in the house usually the ones who start the fire?
Madam Lin has seen a lot. Even if she has never done it herself, she knows some steps. Shes much better than me.
I dont have a choice. My sister is so pure and innocent. Why dont you give it a try? I still have to soak the noodles on my side. Otherwise, itll be a waste of effort if theres no rice and noodles to go into the pot after the fire is raised.
But Lin Xu directly gave up.
She didnt take the initiative to start the fire and cook just now to listen to others ridicule.
Everyone was a pitiful person in trouble. They had notpletely settled down yet, but they were already eager to regain their status as rich youngdies.
Who was she using as a rough servant girl!
When Madam Tian heard this, she knew that Lin Xu was truly angry. She immediately softened her attitude and said in a ttering and coquettish manner, Madam Lin, please dont be angry with me! Im young and insensible, but Im also a straightforward person, so I dont have any bad intentions!
I know, my sister is just a straightforward person, but Im not angry. Dont we have to divide the work and work together to cook? I cant possibly start a fire and cook all by myself. Lets do it?
Madam Tians eyes turned and she looked at the other woman who had not spoken.
Madam Tian, dont look at me. Ive broken an arm and cant do any work.
It was unknown when the woman had put on a splint on her arm, but she raised it and gestured to Madam Tian.
Isnt there still an arm thats fine? Cant you help to start the fire? Madame Tian said in dissatisfaction.
Im already helping to draw water and wash the pots. Everyone has their own division ofbor. As for you, youve been talking for so long, and youre using your mouth to do the work?
The woman said rudely.
She had already left some face for Madam Tian just now, but she didnt seem to understand the cheeky words, so she could only choose a more direct way.
You! Hmph! I cant be bothered to talk to you!
Seeing that this was a tough nut to crack, Madam Tian was a little scared.
The five of them were the only women left.
Two of them were already dumbfounded, and Lin Xu had clearly decided to wash her hands off this matter. If she were to have another conflict with this woman, she would really be isted and helpless.
Finally, Madam Tian was not too stupid and knew to shut up. In the end, they did not cause a huge ruckus.
Lin Xu really went to make the dough. Madam Du also left the stove and left the matter of starting the fire to Madam Tian.
She held the firewood and gestured for a long time. When the me touched her, she threw the lit firewood out. If it wasnt for the fact that most of the firewood was damp, she could have set the kitchen on fire.
Even after Lin Xu had finished kneading the dough and was ready to steam them in the steamer, Madam Tian still did not start the fire.
I cant take it anymore. If you guys cant put down your pride to beg my benefactor, I cant take it anymore. How about we all go hungry together? No one will be able to eat a warm meal today!
Madam Tian threw the firewood in her hand, got up, and left angrily.
At first, she was hoping that someone would stop her, but even when she reached the entrance of the courtyard, there was no sound from behind.
She wanted to stop, but she couldnt bring herself to do so, so she could only force herself to go find Gu Ying.
Although the man was wearing a half-mask and his face couldnt be seen clearly, the outline of his face was exquisite and three-dimensional, and he was tall. His figure was tall, healthy and handsome and his temperament was outstanding. Just this was enough to make peoples hearts beat faster.
Not to mention that he was highly skilled in martial arts and had a valiant and heroic bearing. If he could be a little gentler, she would definitely be willing to follow him and serve him. For a lifetime!
It was just that he seemed to ignore her countless intentional or unintentional hints. His originally cold and serious temperament was simply enough to freeze people to death.
As soon as she thought of the cold gaze he shot over, Madam Tian couldnt help but shiver.
She was now a little regretful of her anger just now. Why did she have to ask that man for help?
Now that she had spoken her big words, in addition to the fact that she had to bear the abuse of those people every day after being captured, she had to eat rancid cold rice. There were even many times when she could not even eat such a meal.
The thought of the fragrant rice and the steaming hot buns made her stomach growl uncontrobly.
Madam Tian rubbed her shriveled stomach, gritted her teeth, and walked back to the house where Gu Ying was.
At this moment, Gu Ying was in the courtyard, checking on the situation of the brigands.
The dead brigand at the bottom was dragged out by him and thrown to the side. The brigand on top of him was in no better condition. They looked like they were on the verge of death and didnt even have the strength to lift their heads up from the mud.
Hmmm Wuwuwu!
A faint sound came from the tree next to him. The voice belonged to the female bandit who was tied up.
During this period of time, she had been well fed and dressed, and her body was still in good condition. In addition, Gu Ying had only removed her chin and tied her up, not turning her into a high paraplegic, so her condition was rtively better.
Seeing Gu Ying looking over, the woman immediately shook her head a little harder.
She just wanted to attract Gu Yings attention, and even at this time, she still refused to give up on the idea of begging for mercy.
Gu Ying only nced at her. When he met her pitiful eyes, his gaze didnt even fluctuate. He turned a blind eye to her and looked at the man beside her.
The brigand leaders head was lowered, and it looked like he was not breathing, but if one looked closely, one could see that his chest and abdomen would only move slowly after a long time.
He had obviously adjusted his breathing to slow down his heartbeat and breathing to continue the fire of life that was about to extinguish.
This breathing method was also known as turtle breathing technique.
Gu Ying didnt expect to see such a breathing pattern on a brigand leader, and his interest was immediately piqued.
How did you learn the turtle breathing technique?
Gu Ying walked to the side of the bandit leader and asked directly.
The brigand leader lowered his head and didnt respond. It was as if he hadpletely stopped breathing.
I know you can hear me.
You can choose to die with this secret. I dont mind, Gu Ying said.
He only asked this because the turtle breathing technique was an extremely special breathing method, and not many people could master it.
The reason was that he was not used to this breathing.
He had also intercepted a batch of ancient books during a mission in his previous life. Just like MO Ruyue, he had benefited a lot from it.
He had learned the turtle breathing technique from one of the ancient books. Even with his average talent, he had to practice it well before he could reach a small sess.
He didnt expect to see someone who knew the turtle breathing technique again after his rebirth.
However, this brigand leader only had a superficial understanding. He didnt know if he had figured it out himself or if the person who taught him had deliberately left a trick up his sleeve.
If he continued to use the turtle breathing technique like this a few more times, the brigand leaders body would be in great danger. Even if he didnt meet him today, he would die a terrible death in the future..
Chapter 424 - 424: Are You Jealous?
Chapter 424: Are You Jealous?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The brigand leaders body moved slightly, finally giving some reaction, and he slowly raised his head.
His mouth was wide open as he looked at the lonely shadow shaking his head slightly, indicating that his chin was still in the state of being dislocated, and that he could not speak even if he wanted to.
Gu Ying reached out and lifted his chin. At the same time, he took out a metal stick from his waist and stuck it between his teeth.
Youre afraid Ill bite my tongue andmit suicide?
Although the brigand leader looked like he was on the verge of death, and his words were a little muffled because of the stick in his mouth, it wasnt difficult for Gu Ying to distinguish what he was saying.
The bandit leaderughed again when he saw Gu Ying raise an eyebrow and not give any other response.
I know Im dead for sure, so I can only tell you what youre interested in in exchange for a quick death, right?
No, its up to you whether you want to say it or not, but you dont deserve a quick death.
Gu Ying replied without any hesitation, but his answer made the brigand leaders heart sink.
He was certain that Gu Ying would definitely do what he said.
When he thought he had enough bargaining chips, it was this man who dispelled his fantasy with his actions.
A chill rose from the bottom of his heart. Although he could no longer feel anything below his neck, the shiver that came from the depths of his soul made him once again experience what it meant to shiver in fear.
It was a strange man. He said he liked the way I did things, so he gave me a gift. After learning this breathing method, you can pretend to be dead perfectly.
And he taught me for half a month. He only left after I learned it.
Although the brigand leader seemed to havepromised and given an answer, whether the truth was really like that was still uncertain.
Gu Ying only listened to this answer for the time being.
If he could meet someone who knew the turtle breathing technique in the future, he might be able to follow the answer and confirm it.
I know you wont believe me, but that man has a strange tattoo on his neck. Its a ferocious ming bulls head, but he usually wraps it around his neck and doesnt show it easily.
When the brigand leader said this, Gu Ying turned his back to him. His pupils suddenly shrank into a line, but he only turned to look at him indifferently, not revealing his true feelings.
Then how did you know about the tattoo?
He wanted to teach me the turtle breathing technique, so he had to show me how to breathe. Thats why he took off the cloth around his neck and let me see the movement of his chest and neck when he breathed.
The brigand leader confessed quickly this time, but the long sentence was muffled and drool kept dripping from his mouth. Soon, his clothes were wet. He really wanted to suck back his saliva, and he kept trying to do so. His tongue and lips were blocked by the metal stick, and in the end, it was all in vain.
Gu Ying didnt continue to ask. Instead, he walked forward and dislocated his jaw again.
The brigand leader lowered his head again. This time, he knew that he had lost hisst use.
Young Master, please help me.
At this moment, Madam Tian walked into the courtyard and saw that Gu Ying was about to return to his room. She immediately went forward and naturally reached out to grab his arm.
Gu Ying stepped back and avoided her hand.
Is there something wrong?
We couldnt start a fire no matter what, so we cant cook. Young Master, please help me. This way, you can also have a warm bite.
As Madam Tian spoke, she couldnt help but nce at Gu Yings body.
When they had just been saved, they were all still in shock and did not take a good look at their benefactor.
Although the sky waspletely dark now, a torch was lit in the courtyard. Under the dim yellow light, the face and figure of the benefactor were even more three-dimensional and perfect. He was simply like a banished immortal in the moon, making people unable to look away.
The more she looked at it, the more her face turned red and her heart beat faster. Compared to her benefactor, her engaged fianc seemed extremely weak, as if he would fall over with a gust of wind.
Gu Ying noticed that there was something wrong with her gaze, and his eyes became colder.
He had seen this kind of gaze many times and had long been immune to it.
However, it was inevitable that he would feel a sense of frustration.
Let the firewood remain dry. I still have things to do, so dont bother me again.
After saying this, he turned around and prepared to enter the house.
Young Master, weve been busy for half a day, but it still hasnt worked. Please do us a favor and help us again!
Gu Yings indifference did not scare off Madam Tian.
In fact, her heart was full of love. She had long been blinded by the beautiful thoughts in her heart, fantasizing that she could use her charm to charm Gu Ying and firmly grasp this man in one fell swoop.
As long as he was by her side, no stinky man would dare to bully her in the future. Not only would she be able to live a good life, wear gold and silver, but she would also have an endless sex life.
Madam Tians gaze kept wandering between Gu Yings broad shoulders, narrow buttocks, and long legs. Suddenly, she felt her entire body begin to heat up.
As she spoke, she once again moved closer to Gu Ying, and even deliberately stepped on the hem of her dress, staggering into his arms.
Just as Gu Ying was about to make a move, a dark light shed past and wrapped around Madam Tians waist, pulling her out violently.
The 100-pound man was like a straw that was thrown into the sky and into the pile of people that the bandits had picked up.
A figure suddenlynded in front of Gu Ying and coldly said to Madam Tian, who had been thrown out, You dare to touch my people, do you not want to live?
Gu Yings face was originally cold and serious, but when he saw the back of the person who came, he immediately turned into a pool of spring water.
Madam Tian was thinking of throwing herself into his arms when she suddenly flew into the sky and fell hard into the crowd.
Although there were many cushions for her, the shock still made her unable toe back to her senses for a moment, and she was so frightened that she started wailing.
However, what surprised her even more was that there was actually a woman standing in front of her benefactor, putting on a posture of dering sovereignty.
When she was screaming, the woman seemed to have said something, but she didnt hear it clearly.
Who are you? You cant afford to hurt me!
Madame Tian struggled to get up, but she identally pressed her hand on the body under her. When she turned around and saw the bandits who had humiliated and hurt her, she was instantly scared out of her wits.
The various scenes of her being humiliated shed through her mind. How could Madam Tian care about anything else? She iled her four limbs and struggled non-stop. However, the more she struggled, the more she sank into the crowd. She could not break free at all.
Bing Er, why have youe?
Gu Ying took a step forward and very naturally wrapped his arm around MO Ruyues waist.
I saw the news that Little ck brought back. Coincidentally, the farm work over there has also finished, so I thought Ide over to join in the fun.
MO Ruyue also naturally snuggled into Gu Yings arms, but her fingers twisted his waist slightly.
If I didnte, I wouldnt have known that someone was coveting you. Gu Ying, even this mask cant hide your charm.
She said with a smile that was not a smile, but her tone made the smile on Gu Yings face deepen.
Bing Er, are you jealous?
Chapter 425 - 425: Gloating Over Someone’s Misfortune
Chapter 425: Gloating Over Someones Misfortune
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Whats there to be jealous about? You didnt do anything to her.
MO Ruyue felt that something was wrong after she finished speaking and gave him another side nce.
The flirtatious look in her eyes caused Gu Yings heart to skip a beat. Although it was not the first time he had seen her like this, it still caused his heart to flutter.
Hey, you two, hurry up and pull me up. Help!
Miss Tian was still struggling in the crowd, but her attitude when she was calling for help was too high. Her voice had already cracked, but she still put on an attitude as if she was giving her a chance.
Where did this crazy womane from? Shes so full of herself.
Mo Ruyue sized up Miss Tian. She looked pretty, but her voice sounded like she had overdone it with sugar.
Judging from its appearance, it could barely be given six points, not more than that.
In his previous life, although Gu Ying was the top killer in the circle, the number of women who pursued him could still circle the earth a few times.
This Miss Tians beauty didnt even have the qualifications to line up, let alone enter Gu Yings eyes.
She had finished her farm work and only saw the news that Little ck had brought back. Immediately after, she rode on it and rushed to the fork where the bandits had set up their ambush.
At the same time, she also saw the traces left behind by the bandits. She was not in a hurry to find them, but it suddenly started to rain, and the rain was getting heavier.
MO Ruyue was afraid that she would miss those traces, so she had chased after them.
It was just that something happened on the way, causing her to be dyed. Otherwise, she would have arrived long ago.
She didnt expect to see a woman throwing herself into her mans arms as soon as she rushed over. How could she tolerate this?
Miss Tian continuously dug with her hands and kicked with her feet, and finally slid down from the pile of people. Although she had fallen head first into the mud, she couldnt care less and rolled and crawled over to Gu Yings side.
Benefactor, save me! This woman is going to kill me!
She was too scared and kept turning back to look at the bandits. Even if they were lying on the ground motionlessly and could only look up at her with their mouths wide open, it could not alleviate the fear in her heart.
So she didnt notice that the woman she said wanted to kill her was intimately snuggling up in her benefactors arms.
Who do you think you are?
Although MO Ruyue still didnt know the ins and outs of the matter, looking at the Madam Tians appearance, it was obvious that she wanted to hug Gu Yings thigh.
In the past, she wouldnt have cared about this kind of tea-like woman.
However, now that she had already exposed thatyer of window paper with
Gu Ying, no matter how much she knew that Gu Ying only had her in his heart, she still couldnt help but feel jealous.
You You shameless woman, how could you go into a mans arms in broad daylight? Let go of my benefactor!
Only then did Miss Tian see the two of them snuggling intimately together. She was instantly stunned on the spot as if she had been struck by lightning. It took a long time for her toe back to her senses, and her face immediately contorted with jealousy.
This is my man. Not only can I hug him, but I can also kiss him!
As MO Ruyue spoke, she turned her head without hesitation, wrapped her arms around Gu Yings neck, and delivered a kiss.
Although Gu Ying usually had an ice-cold face, he was absolutely passionate in front of MO Ruyue.
He didnt care about what others thought of him, and it was rare for Bing Er to take the initiative. He immediately held her waist and responded enthusiastically.
The two peoples actions as if there was no one else around shocked Miss Tian. Not only did her heart turn to dust, but she also didnt expect these two people to actually do such a shameless thing.
You You Youre all immoral and shameless!
Her lips trembled for a long time before she managed to squeeze out a sentence.
It was as if a nest of ants had burrowed into her heart and were gnawing at it madly.
This woman in mens clothes in front of her was stronger than her?
Miss Tian refused to admit that MO Ruyue was still extremely pretty even in mens clothes, let alone how devastatingly beautiful she would be after she returned to womens clothes.
Shut up! Who are you to covet my man? Do you have any shame? MO Ruyue immediately retorted, like a lioness protecting her food.
I didnt! I just want to ask my benefactor for a favor, dont you nder me and taint my innocence!
Miss Tians thoughts had been exposed, and her eyes immediately became evasive.
If only her benefactor was here, she could still half-admit it. But now, she had been exposed by her benefactors woman. How could she continue?
Whether it is or not, you know it in your heart! I can save you, but that doesnt mean I cant kill you. If you still value your life, then get lost!
MO Ruyue couldnt be bothered to argue with her anymore. Her good mood of the day had been ruined by this woman with bad intentions.
Miss Tian looked pitifully at Gu Ying, trying to find a trace of pity and hesitation in his eyes.
However, herst hope was shattered. Gu Ying didnt even bother to look at her.
His eyes were focused on the woman, his love as deep as the sea and as passionate as fire.
How was this still the cold and frosty benefactor from before? He was simply the affectionate Young Master that would make all women go crazy!
Miss Tian slowly got up. She didnt care about the mud and water on her body as she walked dejectedly to the courtyard gate.
She suddenly stopped and stood still at the door.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying noticed Miss Tians strange behavior at the same time and also looked toward the entrance of the small courtyard that was covered by the night.
Miss Tian, youve been gone for so long that the stove is still cold, but the dough I kneaded is almost dry.
Lin Xus voice could be heard from outside. There was a hint of gloating in her calm narration, and it seemed like she had been listening in for a long time. MO Ruyues elbow hit Gu Yings waist, and she asked meaningfully, Another one?
Bing Er, you know me Gu Ying smiled helplessly.
Before he could finish, he was interrupted by MO Ruyue. Of course I know you. How could such a person enter your eyes?
Although she said that, she still felt a little depressed.
Even if she was certain that the person who belonged to her would not have any changes, the feeling of being coveted by others would still make her feel ufortable.
Hmph, what can I do if my benefactor is not willing to help? I cant get that stove, otherwise well all go hungry.
Madam Tian had been snubbed by Gu Ying and ridiculed by MO Ruyue. She was in a bad mood, but she didnt expect that Lin Xu would also hit her when she
was down, so she immediately red up.
Benefactor saved us. He already did us a favor. Youre still making irresponsible remarks. You dont know whats good for you.
Lin Xus voice was gentle and polite, and she was able to maintain her image as a person who knew the big picture.
MO Ruyue touched his chin, nodded, and said in a low voice, This rank is much higher than that.
Gu Ying didnt expect that she wouldment on it with great interest) and his face suddenly showed an expression of not knowing whether tough or cry.
However, he wisely chose to keep his mouth shut and not express any opinions on this, so as not to get himself involved in unnecessary trouble.
Miss Tian left those words and stormed off.
Lin Xu looked at the gate, took a deep breath, and then entered the courtyard.
Although she had already mentally prepared herself, she still couldnt help but gasp when she saw MO Ruyue.
The woman in front of her was extremely beautiful and was intimately snuggling in her benefactors arms, not even avoiding the eyes of others.
Her benefactors reaction was the same. His arm was firmly wrapped around her waist, and he had no intention of letting go just because someone wasing.
This showed that the rtionship between the two was extremely deep, and it was almost impossible for others to interfere..
Chapter 426 - 426: A Timely Rain
Chapter 426: A Timely Rain
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
However, Lin Xu believed in one thing: nothing was absolute.
As long as she used the right method, coupled with patience and courage, she would eventually find a chance to break through.
Which cat didnt cheat? Even if there was any, wouldnt it be a greater sense of aplishment to be able to conquer such a man?
All kinds ofplicated emotions were tangled together and shed in her eyes. She thought she had hidden it well, but she didnt know that all of this was seen by MO Ruyue.
To be honest, she was more willing to fight with the stupid but straightforward Miss Tian. Although she did not take the scheming Lin Xu seriously, it would be more troublesome to deal with her.
MO Ruyue hated troublesome people the most.
Now that there were survivors to deal with, it was already a waste of energy. She really didnt want to waste her energy on unnecessary things.
Benefactor, Im here to ask if you prefer rice or noodles. Its the cold season ofte spring now, and its also raining. You cant not eat, so you should eat a little.
Lin Xu spoke directly to Gu Ying, as if she didnt see the person in his arms. You dont have to worry about that. Im in charge of my man.
MO Ruyue directly took over the conversation and dered her sovereignty.
After learning from Miss Tian, Lin Xu was already mentally prepared for MO Ruyues straightforwardness, so she didnt seem very surprised.
As if she had just seen another person, she said in surprise, Young Lady, were you also kidnapped by the bandits and saved by our benefactor? If thats the case, well be sisters in need.
This sentence was said very cleverly, imperceptibly lowering MO Ruyues status to the same as hers.
On one hand, she was secretly ridiculing MO Ruyues innocence. On the other hand, she was pulling the rtionship between the two closer in another way.
This is my wife, not some sister in need.
Gu Ying seemed to have suddenly been enlightened. Without waiting for MO Ruyue to give any hints, he directly took over the conversation.
This time, Lin Xu would not be able to handle it.
If MO Ruyue had replied, she could still y dumb and use this as an excuse to make a fuss, but Gu Yings words had cut off her avenue of making a fuss.
Why else would they say that there would be wars between women? It was entirely because men intentionally or unintentionally left opportunities for them.
It was difficult for her to go around Gu Ying and find trouble with MO Ruyue when he cut off the ball and didnt give Lin Xu any chance.
It turns out This Lady, no, This Lady is your wife. I thought I thought that you were the one who saved her. Ive really offended you.
Lin Xus expression was rather unsightly, but she could only force out a smile to find a way to smooth things over.
Next time, if you dont understand the situation, dont just talk nonsense. You should learn from your mistakes, but if you do something knowingly, then its different.
MO Ruyue was really annoyed by this kind of green tea girl, so she didnt intend to stop there.
Someone was coveting her man. If she didnt teach her a lesson, she would really think that she was a soft persimmon.
Moreover, that woman obviously didnt have the intention of backing off. In that case, she would y with her.
These words were already very impolite, and they were just short of directly pointing out Lin Xus thoughts.
MO Ruyues fingers wrapped around Gu Yings hand that was around her waist, and their fingers were intertwined. This kind of public yet subtle show of affection was more effective than words.
Lin Xus eyes uncontrobly drifted over and stopped between the twos intimately intertwined fingers.
It was already very difficult for her to maintain the smile on her face, let alone think of something to refute MO Ruyues words.
The corners of Gu Yings lips curved into a smile. His other hand caressed MO Ruyues cheek, affectionately pushing her wind-blown messy hair behind her ear, and then gently rubbing the top of her head a few times.
This gentle pat on the head was even more lethal than his previous words, and Lin Xu could no longer maintain her fake smile.
Since the two of you arent hungry, I wont bother you. If you want to eat somethingter, there will be food left in the pot for you. Juste and eat.
After she finished speaking, she gave a slight nod, turned around, and walked away quickly.
MO Ruyue looked at Lin Xus back and the smile on her face gradually disappeared.
Ying, this woman hasnt given up yet. Shes really a person who wont turn back until she hits a wall.
Alright, Bing Er, lets go back now. From now on, we wont have anything to do with each other. Its no use even if she has any other thoughts.
Although Gu Ying really enjoyed MO Ruyues jealous look, he didnt want her mood to be affected, so he advised her.
Theres no hurry. We still have the whole night. The road outside is muddy and difficult to walk on, and its even easier for situations to ur if we travel in the dark. Its safer to wait until dawn.
MO Ruyue didnt seem to be in a hurry to get on the road.
When she left the survivors vige, she had already left a message that if she couldnt return tonight, she would wait until tomorrow.
Anyway, the vige was hidden and it would not be easy to find it. She did not have to worry about any problems after leaving for a while.
Whats going on with these people? I saw that you directly crippled them, and in order to prevent them from biting their tongues tomit suicide, you deliberately dislocated their jaws. They must be a group of extremely evil people, and they must have angered you.
MO Ruyue changed the topic and looked at the piles of people in the courtyard, as well as the man and woman tied to the tree. She could more or less guess the situation.
Gu Ying immediately recounted what he had seen and knew. Although his tone was also indifferent, one could still hear the killing intent in it.
Yes, not to mention that youll be furious when you see it. If it were me, I wouldnt let them die so easily either.
After MO Ruyue heard what had happened) she thought of the big pit she had seen when she came over, and an evil fire also rose in her heart. She wanted to personally crush these bastards.
Although the group of bandits who were on the verge of death had all be paralyzed, their ears were still working. When they heard MO Ruyues words, their hearts trembled.
The woman who had appearedter was not a good person either. From the way she had shown her skills, she did not seem to be any weaker than the masked man.
Not long ago, the brigands had been arrogant, but now, they couldnt even tremble in fear. They could only open their eyes wide in horror and wait for their next fate.
Lets not care about these beasts for now. I have something to show you.
Gu Ying pulled MO Ruyue into the house and showed her the grain, gold, and silver he had dragged out.
Not bad. The harvest is quite good!
MO Ruyue couldnt help but whistle loudly. She didnt expect that Gu Ying would gain so much from fighting for justice this time.
If the mountain bandits outside knew that they had provoked such a fiend, would they have already regretted it so much?
To you and me, wealth is just a string of numbers. Moreover, all of this wealth added up is not even a fraction of it. On the other hand, this food can be considered a timely rain.
The most important thing to Gu Ying was the food. As for the other valuables, he wouldnt feel bad even if they were left here as scrap metal..
Chapter 427 - 427: I Don’t Want Them To Die Too Quickly
Chapter 427: I Dont Want Them To Die Too Quickly
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
This amount of food is enough to support those people for a while.
MO Ruyue looked at these unexpected surprises, and the huge stone in her heart finally fell.
The survivors now relied on the food she brought back for a second time. Even if they started farming now, it would take at least a few months to harvest.
No matter how frugal she was with the food she took out, it was only enough for those people to eat for less than a month. The batch of food seized now was enough tost them for another month.
In two months time, even if they nted some corn, potatoes, and vegetables, they would be mature. This would solve the food problem, and they would not have to worry about starving to death.
I thought that the women who were rescued were all pampered by rich families. Even if they were brought back to the vige, they would only consume food and would not help.
It would be better to give them some money and food, give them two carriages, and then send them away.
Gu Ying exined his n and MO Ruyue immediately agreed.
I think its feasible. We cant stay in that vige forever. Even if we cant help them to the end, at least we cant bring trouble back.
Especially those two women. I dont want any more trouble to happen.
MO Ruyue was not a saint. The two women who coveted her man were still alive because she had been living with her babies for more than half a year. Her original cold-blooded and heartless behavior had been restrained a lot.
It was already their good fortune that she didnt take the initiative to find trouble with them. It was impossible to get any more help and benefits from her.
Then, pack up the things. When we leave tomorrow morning, well leave the things for them. Thats already very kind of us.
MO Ruyue did as she said.
She took out several cloth bags and straw bags from the medium.
One was filled with money, and the other was filled with food.
In just an hour, the two of them had divided the money and grain into five.
Out of all the women who had been kidnapped by the bandits, only five of them had survived. However, two of them had already be delirious and deranged fools.
Miss Tian and Lin Xu were not easy to deal with. With them around, it was hard to say if the two crazy women could keep their money.
However, this had nothing to do with MO Ruyue and Gu Ying. After all, they couldnt possibly take care of those two girls forever.
Finally, smoke rose from the small courtyard in the distance. No matter who started the fire, it meant that those women could have a warm meal tonight.
As for MO Ruyue and Gu Ying, the two of them took advantage of the time when no one came to eat and went back to the interspace.
Because they didnt expect the two toe back, when the Liu couple and the five babies saw them, their eyes widened in surprise.
Mother, why did you suddenlye back? Are you going to take us out? San Baos reaction was the fastest. He immediately jumped up and rushed to MO Ruyues side.
The space was vast, the scenery was beautiful, and even the air was fresh, but He was too lonely.
Even if they had wolves, the ck panther, and the livestock raised in the courtyard aspanions, the only ones he could talk to were the Liu couple, his brothers, and his little sister.
San Bao felt that he was so bored that his hair was about to grow out, and he couldnt wait to go out and get some fresh air.
Im afraid not. Lets wait a few more days. Your Uncle Ying and I still have things to deal with outside. When were on our way again, well find an opportunity to take you out.
MO Ruyue would not rashly bring the babies outside when the situation was unclear.
It was fine to say that she was overly protective. As long as the babies were not in any danger, she didnt care even if people said that she was arbitrary.
Ruyue, you guys havent eaten yet, have you? Im going to cook some noodles and break a few more eggs. You guys can go out after youre full.
Aunt Liu interrupted from the side and as expected, she spoke of MO Ruyues thoughts.
However, she had another purpose in returning to the space, which was to dilute some of the spirit spring water forter use. When she returned to the survivors vige, it would be useful.
After the meal, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying left the space again.
There were still a bunch of bandits in the yard and a few women who had survived in the vige. The two of them could not rest in the space in peace in such an environment.
However, they did not choose to rest in the main house either. Even though the smell had spread for a long time, the whole house was still filled with an unpleasant fishy smell.
MO Ruyue even felt that if she stayed in this room any longer, her whole body would be stained with this smell that would not be eliminated.
They locked the door of the main room and moved it to the side room.
Not sleeping for a night would not affect the two of them. They lit an oilmp and prepared to meditate instead of sleep to pass the night.
There were asional rustling sounds outside the house. The singing was heard, but in the middle of the night, the sound became faintly discernible and gradually became silent.
Even though it was already spring, the power of the chill of reversed spring was still very strong.
In thetter half of the night, the temperature could even drop below zero degrees.
The bandits had already been seriously injured when they fought with Gu Ying and had be paralyzed. In addition, they had been in the rain for a whole day and were beginning to freeze in the middle of the night. Even if their bodies were made of iron, they could not bear it.
Some of the weaker ones had long been drowned to death by the mud.
As for those with strong physiques, they were all on theirst breaths and were barely hanging on.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying naturally didnt care about the bandits lives. In reality, they didnt take their lives personally because they didnt want them to die too easily.
With the previous experience of running into walls, neither Lin Xu nor Miss Tian came to disturb MO Ruyues alone time.
However, she was also very clear that when the two women left, their eyes were shing with a light that refused to admit defeat.
After running away from natural disasters and being piged by mountain bandits, to them, meeting a man as strong and capable as Gu Ying, who also looked extremely handsome and tough, was simply theirst straw to clutch at.
How could they retreat so easily?
If nothing unexpected happened, the two of them would definitely think of another way to stay by Gu Yings side.
However, Gu Ying had already arranged two paths for them, and there were only two. He just didnt know how wonderful their expressions would be when they heard the news tomorrow morning.
Once MO Ruyue thought of that scene, she couldnt wait.
The sky outside brightened too slowly, and it really dyed her from watching a good show.
Before the sun rose, the clouds in the sky had already gradually dispersed. The night outside slowly faded from dark blue, like ink being dyed in ayer of mist, gradually revealing ayer of white.
The eastern sky was suffused with a hint of white, and bright golden-orange color was painted on the edge of the white line, beginning to spread across the entire sky.
MO Ruyue woke up from her state of meditation. When she opened her eyes, they were clear and there was no sign of fatigue from not sleeping for the whole night.
As she stood up, Gu Ying also opened his eyes.
The two of them looked at each other and smiled. Everything was said without words..
Chapter 428 - 428: How Long Can She Live?
Chapter 428: How Long Can She Live?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue walked out of the main house and saw the mountain bandits lying on the ground in the courtyard. Their skin had already begun to show a cold bluish white, and their pupils were covered with ayer of white film. They lookedpletely hard.
The man and woman tied to the tree were still breathing weakly. When they heard her footsteps, they seemed to want to look up, but their necks were so heavy that they couldnt raise them. They only trembled slightly before hanging down again.
Gu Ying, I remember you saying that the female brigand is a woman who cant even tie up a chicken. Even the strong brigands couldnt make it throughst night, and she actually made it?
MO Ruyue looked at the woman with interest.
Her long hair drooped down and covered her face, making it impossible to see her face clearly.
But from Gu Yings description, it wasnt hard to deduce that she was a woman who was alluring, sexy, and pure at the same time. She was the most popr woman in her previous life who had the ceiling of pure desire.
It was said that she was also a victim of the brigands robbery and humiliation. However, with her proud appearance and figure, she hadmitted herself to the brigand leader and colluded with these bastards.
She cant hold on much longer.
Gu Ying didnt even look at it and went straight to the gate of the courtyard, ready to set up the carriage.
The sudden drop in temperaturest night had frozen the mud on the ground, which was conducive to the passage of the carriage, and they could be ready to set off at any time.
MO Ruyue no longer paid attention to the woman tied to the tree. Instead, she walked over to help Gu Ying.
The food and valuables had to be moved to the carriages. Although the boxes were big and heavy, they were nothing to the two of them.
The two of them carried a box in each hand, as if they were carrying two stalks of straw, and they carried it up the carriage lightly.
Soon, the house was only left with the supplies for the rescued women. Ying, go and find those women. Well go back after distributing the things. You dont mind if Im pestered by them again? Gu Ying deliberately teased.
Thats something you should be worried about.
MO Ruyue smiled slyly, clearly prepared to watch the show from the sidelines.
Gu Ying had never been able to do anything to her, so he could only shake his head with a bitter smile and call for help.
Lin Xu had already woken up before dawn.
Last night was the best sleep she had had in a long time.
Although she was often woken up by nightmares, when she looked at the house with the oilmp lit all night, the fear in her heart would slowly dissipate, and she would fall asleep again.
Compared to her tossing and turning in bed, Miss Tian appeared to be more heartless.
She slept very deeply that night, even snoring like the two crazy women.
When Lin Xu got up, even though she had made quite amotion, Miss Tian only frowned and muttered a few words before turning over and falling back into a deep sleep.
Time to get up, hurry up and help me prepare breakfast!
Lin Xu herself had been pampered since she was young. Other than her inws and husband, who else had she served?
Last night, she had taken the initiative to prepare dinner in order to leave a good impression on her benefactor. She had not taken the initiative to be Miss Tians maid and serve her food and daily life.
Whats the fuss about? Its not even daybreak yet! If you dont want to sleep, dont disturb me!
Miss Tian snuggled under the pillow and covered her ears. At the same time, her words became muffled.
You can sleep if you want, but dont eat the food I made when you wake upter. Im not your maid and I wont serve you!
Lin Xu gentle and pleasant appearance in front of Gu Ying was now gone, and she coldly threw out these words.
Hmph, who cares about your things, I have food too!
Just as Miss Tian was grumbling, Gu Yings voice came from the door.
Everyone, pleasee over for a chat.
When she heard the deep, maic voice of the Gu Ying, Miss Tian seemed to have been injected with chicken blood. She flipped over and got up, no longer feeling tired.
Benefactor, is there something you need from us? Please wait a moment, were making breakfast!
Miss Tians ability to lie with her eyes wide open had already reached the point of perfection. She hurriedly put on her clothes while loudly responding to the outside.
She got off the bed and stepped on the ground barefooted, reaching out to grab her embroidered shoes.
Lin Xu was robbed of her words and could only stare coldly at her, quietly watching her performance.
However, this time, there was no response from Gu Ying. When Miss Tian excitedly ran out of the door, she realized that the person had already left.
He had onlye to inform them. He was not interested in the response at all.
Miss Tian looked at the empty doorway in a daze and heard Lin Xu voice from Denma.
Since youre awake,e over and help.
What are you rushing me for? He has already left, who do you want to show off to?
Miss Tian was not someone to be trifled with. Even though she was not married yet, she was an old hand in the matters between men and women.
Even if Lin Xu had carefully concealed her true feelings, how could they escape the eyes of Miss Tian?
If you dont work, you wont have food. Dont say I didnt remind you. Lin Xu would not waste time bickering with Miss Tian.
In this vige that had been attacked by a natural disaster, they were just temporary victims. After leaving this ce, who would know each other?
So what if she could see through her thoughts?
As long as she could sessfully win over her benefactor, she would have someone to rely on for the rest of her life!
As for the foolish Miss Tian, her benefactor would never take a fancy to her. With her withered body, without a strong man to rely on, how long could she live in this chaotic world after the natural disaster?
In Lin Xus heart, she had long regarded Miss Tian as a dead person, so she didnt mind her strange words.
Whats with that tone and that look!
Miss Tian did not miss Lin Xus contemptuous nce and immediately shouted in embarrassment.
However, Lin Xu immediately turned around and left, not even bothering to look at her.
About half an hourter, Lin Xu brought the two crazy women and another rtively normal woman, Madam Du, to the farmyard where the brigand leader used to live.
They washed the tes and bowls that they had collected, then filled them with soft, snow-white steamed buns and two bowls of millet congee. They brought them over for Gu Ying and MO Ruyue to eat.
Benefactor, Miss, we came a littlete. Breakfast was just prepared, please dont take it to heart.
Lin Xu had a decent and gentle smile on her face, and she spoke with a proper sense of propriety, without the slightest intention of overstepping her boundaries.
MO Ruyue secretly clicked her tongue a few times. She really wanted to watch a show for Lin Xus high-ranking green tea performance. She couldnt stop feeling it.
Weve already eaten.
Gu Yings attitude was still cold and distant, as if he didnt know any manners.
Other than MO Ruyue, the five babies, and the Liu couple, Gu Ying had the same attitude toward everyone.
Even when he was an assassin in the blood tower, he had never changed his attitude when facing the tower master who was high and mighty.
Now, he wouldnt be nice to a woman just because she was trying to please him.
Lin Xua smile froze, and it took a lot of effort to maintain the smile on her lips. She put the bowl of rice in her arms and turned around to hand it to Madam Du standing behind her.
If the two of you are not hungry now, then you can eat at noon. Otherwise, the food is already prepared and it would be a waste if you dont eat.
When she spoke, she had already adjusted her emotions and looked like she had returned to her gentle and decent state..
Chapter 429 - 429: Distributing Food
Chapter 429: Distributing Food
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ive made you worry, but were going to leave now. I think everyone should make ns.
MO Ruyue watched the show for a long time and suddenly became interested.
She joined in and directly told the most important news.
What, you guys want to Youre leaving?
Lin Xu froze again.
This time, she could no longer maintain that perfect expression on her face.Instead, tiny cracks appeared.
Thats right. My husband was ambushed by the brigands, so he came here to check things out. Now that the matter is over, he naturally has to leave.
As MO Ruyue spoke, she carefully observed Lin Xus expression. She noticed the tiniest muscle twitch on her face and suddenly felt the pleasure of acting.
There seemed to be a door opened in her body.
Then, do you have anywhere you want to go? Perhaps, perhaps we can go the same way
Lin Xu said hesitantly.
She really didnt want to take the initiative to bring up this topic. In her n, this should have been brought up by Gu Ying. That way, she would be able to half-push and half-ept, and go with the flow to agree.
It was just that she had miscalcted Gu Yings temperament, and she didnt expect that MO Ruyue would descend from the sky and interfere.
What was worse was that she was the one who had said the most important words.
Of course were going home, but Im afraid were not going the same way as you. Were going south.
MO Ruyue had been waiting for this sentence, and it directly gave an unbelievable answer.
South? Miss, Im from the south. The further south we go, the more serious the disaster will be. Why are you still going south? We should be heading north!
Lin Xu said anxiously.
I still have some rtives in the North. If you have no one to go to, why dont youe with me? This way, I can have a chance to repay my benefactor in the future!
When she heard that MO Ruyue was going south, which was in the opposite direction of her destination, she suddenly became a little anxious.
If that was the case, then she really could not rely on them.
Originally, she had wanted to stay by this pairs side for the time being. As long as there was enough time, she would always find an opportunity.
However, now that this opportunity was about to be lost, how could she be willing to ept it? Naturally, she spared no effort to persuade him.
l called you here to give you some of the food and property we found. Its up to you if you want to leave or stay. Ill take my leave first.
Gu Ying was even more straightforward. Hepletely ignored Lin Xus suggestion and told her his arrangements. Food and property?
This time, Lin Xus face turned even uglier.
She also thought of the most important problem, and that was that the amount of food and property the brigands had stolen was definitely not a small number. Although they could get a part of it, the amount could not be too much.
So, most of the remaining things had fallen into the pockets of these two people?
It wouldnt matter if it was just Gu Ying holding it, but when she thought about how that woman also had a share, or even more than her, Lin Xu felt as if a huge rock had fallen on her heart.
It couldnt be spat out or dissolved.
It was like a fishbone in the throat.
Benefactor, please give me my share first!
A person walked over hurriedly, and her voice came even before she arrived. It was Miss Tian, who had arrivedte.
She didnt hear the first part of the conversation, but she heard Gu Ying say that he wanted to split the money and grain, so she immediately asked for her share.
Gu Ying turned around and entered the house. He quickly came out with two bags, one big and one small.
This is food, enough for one person to eat for ten days to half a month. Heres money. There are some broken silver, copper coins, and silver notes. They can be used for a while if you use them sparingly.
He ced the bag in front of Miss Tian and quickly said what was inside before closing his mouth, not willing to say a word more.
What? Youre only giving me this little thing? Benefactor, you cant be thinking of sending us away like beggars and pocketing the rest of the money, right?
Miss Tian looked at the bag in front of her and reached out to rummage through the things inside, especially the small bag containing money. The more she looked at it, the more disgusted she was.
Miss Tian, dont measure the heart of a gentleman with the heart of a viin. If Benefactor wants money and grain, he can just take it all, why would he give it to us?
Besides, all the food and money that has been plundered are now mixed together. How do you want our benefactor to split it? Do you want him to share it with you?
Lin Xu finally found another chance to show off and retorted without hesitation.
Hehe, why are you pretending to be a good person! Have you already gotten your share in private?
Miss Tian red at Lin Xu from the corner of her eyes. She no longer had any hope for Gu Ying. Since she had to care about one side, she would definitely choose her own benefits.
How else do you think we should split it?
Lin Xu followed up with another question.
This sentence made MO Ruyues eyes reveal a smile as she looked at her meaningfully.
What a good move to retreat in order to advance. This woman was pushing Miss Tian out as a shield and using her mouth to obtain more benefits.
How do we split? Of course, well split it equally. Even if we dont, we shouldnt have taken so little. To put it bluntly, which one of those who were captured by the brigands didnt have wealth and beauty?
These are not even a fraction of the things we brought out. If thats not patronizing beggars, what is?
It was unknown if Miss Tian really didnt understand or if she was just ying dumb. As expected, she went along with Lin Xus wishes and told her the distribution method that she felt was appropriate.
Take it or leave it. If you dont want it, get lost!
MO Ruyue saidzily. This one sentence caused Miss Tians expression to change. She red and prepared to make a scene.
Let me remind you, I dont know how to hold back, and Im not someone who has tender feelings for women.
She raised her eyes slightly, and a cold light shed in her eyes. Miss Tian felt as if she had been stabbed in the chest, and she staggered two steps back.
You, you still want to silence me?
Miss Tian mustered her courage and retorted. Although her words were still very tough, her body very honestly and quietly took two steps back.
In the wilderness, theres a pit of white bones outside the vige. I dont mind having one more skeleton in that pit.
MO Ruyues lips still had deep smiling lines when she spoke. She had described such a terrifying thing so casually, as if it was as easy as eating a cabbage.
Benefactor, Miss, I am willing to ept the things you have distributed. I have no other opinions.
Seeing that the atmosphere was getting more and more stiff, Madam Du immediately took the initiative to take over the conversation and tried to ease the atmosphere.
Why are you afraid of them? I dont believe they would dare to
You shut up!
Miss Tian still wanted to win over herrades to support her, but she didnt expect to be scolded by Madam Du before she could finish her words.
Youve seen how our benefactor dealt with the brigands. If he wanted all the money and food, he couldve waited until we were all dead before he made his move. Why did he have to save us?
Besides, even if we get more money, how are we going to protect ourselves if we encounter brigands or refugees again? Arent you afraid that youll invite another fatal disaster?
Madam Du was clear-headed and couldpletely understand the intention of Gu Ying.
After such a great disaster, food was the most scarce resource.. They had the ability to protect these precious things, but what did they have?
Chapter 430 - 430: The Carriage Disappeared Into Thin Air
Chapter 430: The Carriage Disappeared Into Thin Air
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Of course, Lin Xu also knew this, but not onlv did she want more monev and food to protect herself, she also wanted to use this opportunity to ask Gu Ying to travel with her and protect her, and even achieve her deeper purpose.
Therefore, after adding fuel to the fire just now, she chose to remain silent and quietly watch the situation develop.
Miss Tian snorted but could not refute Madam Dus words. In addition, MO Ruyues sharp de-like gaze was fixed on her, as if giving her a silent warning.
Seeing that Miss Tian had finally shut her mouth, MO Ruyue tsked uninterestedly.
This person was quite stubborn, but she ran away too quickly. It was not challenging at all.
Gu Ying quickly took out the rest of the items and distributed them to everyone ording to the number of heads they had. He even did not leave out the two crazy women.
These two lunatics wont be able to use it even if they take it. Its enough to give them food. Its better to leave the money to someone else.
Miss Tian stared fixedly at the things that belonged to the other two people, and she quietly had other ideas in her heart.
Why do you care how others use their own things? Just mind your own business!
Madam Du saw through Miss Tians thoughts at a nce. She stared at her warily and then looked worriedly at the two crazy women.
Her benefactor was still here, and she dared to express her feelings like this. If her benefactor wasnt here, wouldnt she be openly snatching it?
Unlike her usual self, Miss Tian didnt say anything, but her eyes kept wandering between the bags of the two women.
Lin Xus heart sank when she saw this.
Since her benefactor did not stop her, it meant that he did not care about what would happen after he left.
Or rather, even if something were to happen now, he would not interfere at all.
From the beginning to the end, he had never thought of being responsible for this group of people.
Gu Ying and MO Ruyue had already moved the food and belongings to the carriage. Now that they had distributed the supplies, they were ready to set off. Initially, Miss Tian was unconcerned, but when she saw the two of them get into the carriage, she became anxious.
She rushed to the front of the carriage and opened her arms, anxiously saying, Benefactor, youre leaving after giving us our share? Were all weak women, how are we going to drag these things out of here!
Move! He shouted.
Gu Ying was toozy to exin to her.
He wasnt her father who had to take care of her every day.
Benefactor, we cant force you to stay if you want to leave. We only ask you to take these dry rations with you. I dont know when well have the chance to repay your kindness in the future.
Please ept this small gift.
Lin Xu came over with a basket and pleaded earnestly.
MO Ruyue nced at her and reached out to take the basket.
A horse carriage slowly drove out of the vige. MO Ruyue sat on the shaft of the carriage with a basket in her arms, humming a little tune.
Youre in such a good mood?
Gu Ying asked with a smile as he drove the carriage.
Isnt it a good thing that you didnt return empty-handed aftering out? MO Ruyue nced at him and said with a smile that wasnt a smile. With this batch of food, we can leave without worry.
Gu Ying seemed to have caught on to her words, but what he said was apletely different matter.
There was nothing to worry about. Man proposes, God disposes. We have already done our best. There is no need to have any psychological burden.
MO Ruyue suddenly paused and said self-deprecatingly, We used to be assassins, but now were all doing the business of saving people. Do you think weve improved or regressed?
No matter good or bad, Ill do whatever you do. Ill always follow you.
Gu Yings answer was the same as usual.
When MO Ruyue heard this, she looked at him and smiled.
As long as the two of them were together, she would be willing to do all the bad things, and he would do the same.
Gu Ying saw that she kept holding the basket and frowned. Do you really want to eat that womans food?
Why would I? I know that she doesnt have a good heart. Why would I still eat her food?
MO Ruyue shook her head. She took out a snow-white steamed bun from the basket, broke it into pieces without hesitation, and scattered it as she walked.
Then, are you a sign for them to catch up?
This time, Gu Ying simply slowed down the speed of the carriage.
And then find a few living ancestors for the survivors to raise?
Although MO Ruyue knew that Gu Ying was teasing her, she couldnt help but roll her eyes.
Hehe.
Gu Ying chuckled and focused on driving the carriage.
This time, he deliberately took a long detour and drove the carriage to another road, mixing it with the ruts that were heading south.
MO Ruyue had also almost finished scattering the steamed bun crumbs in her hands. The two of them got off the carriage at the same time, and she directly put the carriage into her interspace.
Alright, no one will know where we are going now.
She dusted her hands and looked at the disguise she had put up, feeling very satisfied.
He did not do all this to guard against Lin Xu, but to guard against others.
Although the location of the vige was a little remote, it could still be found as long as one put their mind to it. There was no guarantee that no one would find the bodies of the bandits.
If there was someone who was good at tracking, they might be able to follow the tracks.
Although the probability wasnt very high, for MO Ruyue, who was used to being cautious, it was already an instinct to not leave any traces and forge them. Besides, it wasnt difficult for them to do it.
She and Gu Ying were both able to use martial arts to step on the snow without leaving a trace. Even if someone could really follow them all the way here, they would never expect her to have a space to store the carriage.
For the pursuer, he could only see two situations.
Those who were less skilled saw the carriage heading south.
Those who were more skilled could see that the carriage had disappeared into thin air and would not leave any traces behind.
After carefully sweeping away their and Gu Yings footprints, the two of them immediately ran in the direction of the survivors vige.
About two hourster, a carriage followed them from the direction they hade from.
A person was walking below with a horse. It was Madam Du, who had always been quiet and sensible.
Madam Du, you should stop and rest for a while. Let me do it.
As soon as the carriage door opened, Lin Xu poked her head out and greeted Madam Du.
Its gettingte. Lets hurry up. Otherwise, well have to spend the night in the wilderness.
Madam Du turned her head and said. Her face was intertwined with fatigue and anxiety. From time to time, she looked down to check the traces left on the ground.
Its a good thing that Madam Du is here, otherwise we would have been left behind by our benefactor.
Miss Tians voice came from the carriage. She was sitting in the innermost part of the carriage and stretched her neck to look out. Her words were pleasant, but her body was still as steady as Mount Tai.
Then why dont youe down and take my ce for a while so that I can rest?
Madam Dus tone was much tougher when she spoke to Miss Tian now. She directly retorted, making her choke and roll her eyes.
Sister Du, we didnt know that your family used to be an escort. We didnt even know that you were so skilled in martial arts that you could distinguish traces and follow them. If it were someone else, they wouldnt be able to keep up.
As Lin Xu spoke, she had already moved to the door and was about to get out of the carriage to rece her.
Thats right. Thats why we cant change the person. I think we should catch up with them in one go. Otherwise, if it rains or storms happen and the traces are gone, well be stuck halfway..
Chapter 431 - 431: Dilemma
Chapter 431: Dilemma
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Although Madam Du was from an escort agency, because she had six older brothers, she didnt need to practice martial arts to be an escort. So she only learned trace tracking and simple martial arts from her father.
She knew that she could not count on the women in the carriage. If she wanted to keep up with her benefactor, she could only rely on herself.
After a few days of torture, her body was already injured. Even after a nights rest and this morning, she would not recover so quickly.
However, if they stayed in the vige, they would be sitting on the mountain and eating nothing. They would not be able to leave even if they wanted to.
It was better to take advantage of the fact that she still had strength, and that her benefactor had not left for too long, to quickly catch up.
Even if their benefactor was unwilling to ept them, they could just fall far away. It was impossible that they had really eaten all their food and were robbed by the disaster victims, and their benefactor would not help them.
With this thought in mind, she hit it off with Lin Xu. She found the remaining carriage in the vige and also brought the two crazy women with her.
They didnt call her Miss Tian at the same time. After all, neither of them had the obligation to be responsible for the other.
They didnt think that the woman was really stupid. She didnt know why her nose was so sensitive, but she actually waited at the vige entrance for them to appear.
She also said that if they didnt take her with them, they wouldnt be able to leave.
In the end, Madam Du was able to let Miss Tian get on the carriage because she took out a sharp knife and threatened that if she couldnt leave, she would kill the horse and everyone would be trapped here.
Just like that, the group of people still set off together.
Miss Tian knew that she had thoroughly offended Madam Du and Lin Xu, so after getting into the car, she shrank into the innermost corner and did not say a word. She had been looking for a suitable opportunity to ease the
rtionship with the two.
Just now, she thought that she had found a suitable opportunity, but she didnt expect that her ttery would fail.
When Lin Xu heard Madam Dus words, she said with a heavy heart, Sister Du, if only I knew how to drive a carriage, you would be able to focus on identifying the traces. You wouldnt have to walk with a horse and go through all this pain!
Why dont you drink some water, eat something, and take a rest before you leave? Let me try how to drive a carriage. Ill help you with your worries.
Madam Du had long been tired to the point that her waist and knees were sore. If she didnt rely on her strength to support herself, she would not have been able to persist.
She was moved by Lin Xus words and wanted to stop as well, but she was also afraid that she would be left behind by her benefactor.
Just as she was in a dilemma, Madam Du inadvertently nced at the ground and suddenly her expression changed.
She pulled the horse to a stop and stuffed the reins into Lin Xus hands, saying anxiously, Take it.
Then, she hurried to the front and squatted down to examine it carefully.
Sister Du, what happened?
Lin Xu was stunned and subconsciously grabbed the reins, but she did not receive any response.
Whats wrong? Why did the carriage stop?
Miss Tian noticed that the carriage had stopped. She looked out the window and couldnt help but ask.
Shut up, even if you cant help, dont bother me!
Lin Xu saw that Madam Du had been looking down at the traces on the ground and guessed that there might be a problem with the traces used for tracking. She was also very anxious.
When she heard Miss Tians voice, she felt that it was particrly noisy. She changed her previous gentle image and scolded her coldly.
What are you shouting for? Cant you just ask?
Miss Tian had been pampered at home. Although she had been obedient for a few days after the disaster, she immediately revealed her true colors after being rescued. She was someone who refused to suffer losses and immediately
yelled back at Lin Xu.
Hmph, you cant help with anything, and you still want to follow me shamelessly. What? If it doesnt go your way, are you going to kill the horse and die with it?
Lin Xu had been tolerating her for a long time, and now that she had exploded, she was on the verge of losing control.
Im shameless? Weve all suffered together, and if you want to leave me behind and run away, youre just leaving me in the lurch! I havent even flipped out, and youre already stepping on my nose!
Miss Tians sore spot had been stepped on, and she began to make a scene without a care.
She didnt think that she had done anything wrong, and instead, she acted as if she was right.
What are you arguing about? If you have the ability, go find your benefactor, dont yell at me!
Madam Du was annoyed by the noise and suddenly roared. Only then did the two people who were staring at each other shut their mouths, rolled their eyes at each other and turned their heads away.
Lin Xu alighted from the carriage and took two steps forward to put some distance between her and Miss Tian.
Sister Du, did you see anything? Cant you find the tire tracks left by Benefactor?
She asked carefully, afraid to hear a definite answer.
Yes, I I lost him.
Madam Dus expression was very ugly.
She had confirmed it many times just now. The ruts that had followed her all the way here had suddenly stopped on this road.
Originally, she had heard that her benefactor was nning to go all the way south, but she thought that the south was seriously affected by the disaster, so her benefactor was just making up an excuse to refuse to bring them along.
She didnt expect his tracks to really extend all the way south. What was even more unexpected was that there were other footprints and tracks that were heading south.
It must have been left behind by people who had gone to the south to find their surviving rtives, which had caused great difficulty for her tracking.
However, when she arrived, she found that her benefactors tracks had disappeared.
It wasnt that it had merged with other traces and couldnt be distinguished, but that it had disappeared into thin air!
Madam Du couldnt exin this situation at all. How could a carriage full of food and property disappear into thin air? Did it grow wings and fly into the Sky?
While she was still racking her brain for a reason, Lin Xu and Miss Tian were shocked by the news.
Sister Du, you Did you see it wrong? The marks here are a lot messier. Why dont you take a good rest first and then take a look?
Lin Xu said, forcing herself to remain calm.
She originally thought that as long as she followed Madam Du and followed the tracks all the way down, she would definitely be able to keep up with her benefactor. But she didnt expect to lose her benefactor halfway.
Now that they had no way to go forward, and they couldnt return to the previous vige, they were faced with a dilemma.
What are you moving about for? If you keep bothering me, Ill kill you!
Miss Tians scolding could be heard from the carriage. Lin Xu did not know what she was up to this time. She turned her head in frustration and was about to scold her to shut up. She did not expect to see a woman using her head to arch Miss Tians leg.
Lin Xu narrowed her eyes and immediately got back into the carriage. She pushed Miss Tian, who was punching the woman in the face, to the side. Lin Xu, dont think that I wont dare to fight you. Dont go too far!
After being embarrassed by Lin Xu one after another, Miss Tian could no longer suppress her anger. She screamed and wed at Lin Xus face without any care.
If you dont want to die here, then be good!
Although Lin Xu was also pampered by an unmarried youngdy and lived a life of luxury after marriage, she liked to cook. She knew that the way to a mans heart is through his stomach so she often cooked to train her culinary skills.
Her physique was much stronger than Miss Tians, so she could block her shrews fist with her arm. Then, she stood up and kicked Miss Tian out of the carriage.
Do you know how to find him?
Lin Xu asked the woman who had suddenly quieted down. Thetter nodded and showed a ttering smile.
The hair that had been scattered on her face slid to the sides, revealing a pure and lustful face.. It was the female mountain bandit who had been abandoned by Gu Ying in the vige to wait for her death!
Chapter 432 - 432: Grasshoppers On The Same Rope
Chapter 432: Grasshoppers On The Same Rope
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
She shook her head and motioned for Lin Xu to hold up her dislocated chin.
After yesterdays ordeal, it was not easy for her to survive. Now, she was paralyzed in the carriage and could not even move a strand of hair, let alone hold her chin up to speak.
Dont y any tricks. If I can save you, I can make you worse than you are now.
Before Lin Xu made her move, she still gave a warning.
Just as the woman was nodding her head, Miss Tian, who had been kicked off the carriage, regained her senses. She flew into a rage out of humiliation and was about to pounce on the carriage again.
Lin Xu wanted to intimidate the female bandit and stop her from ying any tricks. She quickly got up and strode to the car door, punching Miss Tian in the face.
With a soft crack, Miss Tian immediately fell backward. Her face was covered in blood, and her tall nose was nted to one side.
Madam Du had also stood up and was watching coldly from the side. She allowed Miss Tian to roll and roll on the ground, wailing continuously.
The female brigand swallowed hard. She had fully realized how violent this seemingly weak woman in front of her was.
If that punch hadnded on her face, it would definitely have broken her bones
and disfigured her. If she had been hit a few more times, her life would have been in the hands of this woman.
Lin Xu turned around and half-squatted beside the female mountain bandit. She coldly said, Now Ill hold your chin back. If you know something, say it quickly. If you dy our business, Ill make you wish you were dead!
The female brigand nodded her head immediately, her eyes filled with a pleading and urgent expression. Then, there was a crack and her jaw clenched, her mouth was already closed.
The long period of dislocation had caused her cheek muscles to be numb to the point where she couldnt feel anything. Although her mouth was closed, saliva was still flowing down the corner of her mouth.
Tell me, what do you know!
Lin Xu did not give her time to slowly recover and immediately urged her.
He, hes not going south Hes heading north!
The female brigand tried to speak, but her muscles were out of control. She finally managed to squeeze out a sentence.
North? I knew it. The south is suffering from such a serious disaster, so how could he still look south? Hes just finding an excuse.
Lin Xu nodded and pressed, What else do you have? Say it all!
She was now very d that she had brought this female brigand along. Originally, she had wanted to slowly torture her on the road to avenge the humiliation that they had suffered.
She didnt expect to receive such an unexpected surprise.
I I told you, you Swear, swear, you wont harm me!
The female brigand also knew what it meant to hide the bow after the bird was gone, and she was afraid that she would lose her value if she revealed everything, and her end would be even more miserable.
If you ruin my ns, Ill let you know what it means to be better off dead!
Lin Xus entire body exuded a vicious aura. They had already dyed for a long time, and the longer they dyed, the fewer useful clues they would find.
She didnt want to be stuck on the road, or be forced to go north. Every day, she was worried that she would encounter such an encounter again.
The female brigand saw that her eyes were already red. She could only obediently say, Walk north for a while. There is a small, unremarkable Mountain Valley. We were prepared to ambush him there.
From where he came from, hes definitely in the north. If we go there now, we might be able to find some clues.
Under the threat of Lin Xu, she had no choice but to tell her everything she knew. She was so frightened that her speech was much more fluent than before.
Sister Du, lets head north and follow this b*tchs trail.
Lin Xu immediately turned her head and said to Madam Du. Just as she was speaking, Madam Du was already preparing to sit on the shaft of the carriage.
Dont leave me!
Miss Tian, whose face was covered in blood, got up. She clutched the shaft of the carriage with both hands and tried to climb up.
Get lost! Dont force me to kill you right now!
Lin Xu had already shown her most violent side, so she naturally would not pretend to be gentle and considerate.
Furthermore, Miss Tian had already seen her true appearance. She would never allow this woman to drag her down in the future.
Miss Tian had actually be the first to be abandoned in this small group. This fate had already been decided when she repeatedly provoked Lin Xu.
No, Im begging you, dont leave me, I was wrong! I really know I was wrong!
Because Miss Tians nose had been shattered, her voice was buzzing. Moreover, her facial features were all scrunched up because she had pulled on her wound while speaking.
As she apologized, she cried and begged. Snot and tears mixed with blood were all over her face, making her look extremely embarrassed.
However, although she said it miserably, one of her hands was quietly reaching into her arms.
A hand suddenly mped tightly on her arm and pulled out the hand that had already reached into her arms.
Her other hand reached in and took out the knife she had hidden in her bosom.
Your trick has been used once and its already useless. You actually want to use it a second time? Who are you looking down on?
Lin Xu gave a sinister smile to Miss Tian and suddenly jumped down from the carriage. She easily pried off Miss Tians fingers that were on the shaft and pushed them back.
Following a few crisp cracking sounds, a shrill howl that did not sound human pierced the sky.
Miss Tians fingers were bent backward at a strange angle. Eight out of ten fingers had already been broken.
This was not the end.
She was kicked in the chest by Lin Xu again and fell to the ground, face up. She rolled and wailed, her cries even more mournful than before.
Sister Du, help me stabilize her.
Lin Xu looked at Madam Du, a cold light shing in her eyes.
Madam Du immediately got out of the carriage. She was already frightened by Lin Xus series of unexpected operations.
She didnt expect that this woman, who looked the most gentle and delicate, could be so cruel.
She couldnt help but feel a little scared, but now that they were in the same boat, it was toote to leave.
Thus, she tactfully got off the carriage to help. She pressed down on Miss Tians shoulder and pressed her firmly to the ground.
Lin Xu had already found a stone from the side of the road. It seemed to be a few catties heavy, and the edge of the stone was very sharp.
You, what do you want to do! Were under broad daylight Do you still want to kill?
Miss Tian was scared out of her wits and struggled with all her might.
It was just that her fingers were fractured and her shoulders were pressed by Madam Du, so she couldnt break free.
Lin Xu even straddled her waist, suppressing the strength of her lower body.
Youll know what Im going to do soon.
She sneered, raised the stone in her hand, and smashed it down on Miss Tians arm.
After the time it took for an incense stick to burn, the carriage, which had stopped at the same ce for a long time, moved forward again, speeding all the way to the north.
A slowly spreading pool of blood appeared where it had originally stopped.
Miss Tian was lying in the middle of a pool of blood, her mouth wide open. Her face was distorted from the intense pain.
She was not dead vet. but her breathing had be extremely weak.
Her four limbs were bent at a strange angle, and blood kept flowing out of her wounds. Although it was slow, it never stopped.
Not long after, she gradually stopped moving.
Her opened eyes were also covered with ayer of grayish-white film, which quickly attracted a flock of crows to circle in the sky. They swooped down and slowly covered her body..
Chapter 433 - 433: Joy
Chapter 433: Joy
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After the carriage had traveled a few miles, the female brigand suddenly said to the coachman, Madam Du, to slow down a little. That mountain ridge is very unremarkable. Youll miss it if youre not careful.
After seeing what had happened to Miss Tian, she was already scared out of her wits and did not dare to hide anything from Lin Xu.
If she was facing a man now, she was confident that she could seduce him to let her live. However, she was facing a vicious woman who would never leave the mountain.
This made her seductionpletely useless!
Madam Du pulled the reins and let the horse slow down. The female brigand moved her body and carefully observed the mountain road next to her.
She suddenly pointed to a spot and shouted, Its there!
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying rushed all the way and only stopped when they were close to the survivors vige.
The carriage was released from the space, and Gu Ying sat in the drivers seat again.
We didnt go back all night, but we brought so much food and property back. Theyll be so happy to see it.
MO Ruyue was also sitting on the shaft, leaning against the door of the
carriage. She was chatting with Gu Ying while looking back at the supplies in the carriage behind him.
Food is what they need the most now. With this food, its enough for them tost until the new batch of food and vegetables ripen.
Gu Ying also turned back to look and reached out to MO Ruyue.
I have an endless supply of food in my space, but I really dont have a better excuse to take it out. You being robbed is perfect.
MO Ruyueughed as she stuffed her free hand into Gu Yings. The twos fingers were intertwined. Now that they couldnt embrace each other, they would use this method to cuddle each other.
What happened in that vige is definitely not the first, and it will not be thest. Its a pity that this country isnt the Hua nation of my previous life, otherwise
Gu Ying stopped mid-sentence and shook his head.
In those memories that had be distant and blurry, only that country could be considered a warm color in their memories.
In the past, there was also a world-shocking natural disaster that attacked China. However, after the disaster, the Chinese people actively rescued and saved themselves, and countless touching stories emerged.
At that time, MO Ruyue was still young and just happened to be undergoing the cruel life and death trial in the assassin camp. Every day, she hovered on the line between life and death.
She had inadvertently seen the rescue operation that hadsted for more than two months on the inte. She was deeply touched by the camaraderie that had not been abandoned or given up. Blood was thicker than water.
At that time, she often fantasized that if she could continue to live and grow up in that country, would her life trajectory be different?
She had only told this to Gu Ying, so when facing a natural disaster like the meteor shower, and seeing the various tragic scenes that followed, the two of them could not help but recall that gradually fading memory.
Gu Ying, do you think that in this time and space, in the next few hundred or even a few thousand years, there will be a great country like China?
When people encounter natural or man-made disasters, they dont have to worry about not having enough food and clothing, being robbed and tortured, or going through all kinds of hell on earth. Instead, they can get all kinds of timely rescue and help each other in the same boat?
MO Ruyue didnt know why she had suddenly be so emotional.
She knew very well that this was just a world in a book, and it waspletely different from the situation in her previous life, but she couldnt help but go back to fantasize.
What if Would that day reallye?
Bing Er, this kind of thing also requires luck. Whether there will be one in the future or not, at least for now Theres no such soil.
Gu Ying answered seriously.
His feelings were not as deep as MO Ruyues, but one thing was clear. He also hoped that one day, such a country would really appear.
While they were talking, the survivors vige was approaching. Almost all the men, women, old and young outside the vige came out to work in the field, ready to start spring plowing as soon as possible.
Someone with sharp eyes saw a carriageing this way. After taking a closer look, they saw that it was MO Ruyue and Gu Ying. They immediately turned their heads and shouted in joy.
Everyone, look! Lady Qin is back!
This shout rmed everyone, and they all turned their heads to look. There were even those who were close to the path who dragged their farm equipment to the side of the road, ready to wee the two peoples carriage.
Lady Qin, Young Master Ying, both of you have returned! We were all worried when we didnt see youst night!
A man came over, too happy to know what to do.
Yes, it rained so heavily yesterday. We were worried about whether you two had a ce to take shelter from the rain, whether you ate or not, and whether you would catch a cold. Were relieved to see that youre safe and sound.
Lady Qin, we have already searched thend outside three times. After yesterdays rain, thend has been full of water and even a bit flooded. Lets make a water channel together to drain the excess rainwater.
Lady Qin, Young Master Ying, are you hungry? We brought some coarse grains and pastries before we went to the ground, if you dont mind, why dont you eat some to fill your stomach?
Everyone gathered around and talked at once, all of them extremely enthusiastic.
Alright, everyone calm down first. Lady Qin just came back and you all surrounded her, cant you let her catch her breath?
An old man stood up and said, finally bringing the somewhat out of control situation under control.
Ive made everyone worried, but weve also gained a lot from this trip. At least we didnt go out for nothing.
MO Ruyue could see the true joy in their eyes, as well as the well-hidden worry.
She could understand the survivors contradictory mentality.
To them, she and Gu Ying were not only their benefactors, they were also their backbones.
Before they could make any preparations, their pir of support had suddenly disappeared. This caught them off guard, and it was inevitable that they would be terrified.
Gather everyone and go back to the vige. We wont be working today.
MO Ruyue was prepared to distribute the food now. He wouldnt even dy it until tomorrow.
This batch of food, in addition to the life-extending elixir, was also the seed of hope.
When the plundered rich people were escaping, they brought a variety of grain, including coarse grain, fine grain, and even vegetable seeds.
For the survivors, it was a timely rain.
This meant that they didnt have to be stingy and save food for farming.
The survivors looked at each other. Although they didnt know what MO Ruyue had brought back, their instinctive trust made them obey MO Ruyues orders without hesitation.
Soon, the people who were working in the field came back one after another.
Everyone gathered in the vige square, waiting for MO Ruyue to reveal the answer.
Although Deng Feng was resting in his room, he had also received the news that MO Ruyue had returned. He wanted to attend the gathering even though he was on crutches.
However, before he could get out of bed, he was held down in time.
Brother Deng, if I was one stepte, would you have gotten out of bed and left the house?
MO Ruyue left Gu Ying outside and came back to check on Deng Feng. She didnt expect to see such a scene as soon as she entered the room. Benefactor, where did you guys go yesterday? Its raining so heavily outside, and its so cold at night. Do you have a ce to hide from the rain?
Although Deng Feng had been caught red-handed, he was still asking about MO Ruyues condition with concern.
Were doing fine. Im going out to do something now. Brother Deng, you can wait here for me toe back.
MO Ruyueforted Deng Feng and then returned to the square..
Chapter 434 - 434: Splitting The Money
Chapter 434: Splitting The Money
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
At this time, all the survivors in the vige had gathered and were waiting for her to announce the good news.
Has everyone arrived?
She did a quick headcount and confirmed that everyone was present except for Deng Feng.
Were all here, were all here. Lady Qin, what good news do you have? Just tell us quickly. Our hearts are so itchy that grass is about to grow out!
Someone said impatiently, causing a burst ofughter at the same time. Alright. What I want to tell everyone is that weve obtained a batch of emergency food and money.
MO Ruyue announced the news very quickly. At the same time, she was carefully observing everyones reaction.
Really? You got food again?
Almost everyones eyes lit up at the same time. Their attention was focused on the food, and no one noticed that MO Ruyue had also mentioned the word money.
Lady Qin, is what you said true? We, we have food again?
It was the same old man who had helped maintain order before, and he repeated the topic again.
Yes, we have food. The amount this time is enough for you tost until the first harvest.
MO Ruyues answer once again made everyone hold their breath. After a few short seconds, a burst of enthusiastic cheers immediately erupted.
Thats great, were saved!
We have food! We all have food!
Lady Qin and Young Master Ying are our living Bodhisattvas. They have saved us again and again. We cant repay this kindness in all our lives!
The cheers were so loud that they almost broke through the sky. Everyone was shouting,ughing, and pping with all their might. There were even people who had long since burst into tears and were constantly wiping away their tears.
When MO Ruyue saw how happy they were, she also felt a wave of emotion in her heart. She couldnt help but be infected by this lively atmosphere.
She didnt regret saving these people at all, nor did she regret wasting too much time because of them.
Other than the woman who had been left outside the small town forever, the rest of the people were almost all united in order to survive. They were family members of different surnames who were tightly twisted into a rope.
Their happiness now was so simple and pure. In their eyes, there was only food that could save their lives. They couldnt even find anyone who cared about the stench of money.
Im thinking of distributing the food ording to the number of people today. As long as the condition of thend outside the vige allows it, we can start the spring plowing. The earlier we sow, the earlier we can harvest.
MO Ruyue immediately pushed open the carriage door, revealing a high pile of food bags that were stuffed full.
As for the valuables and treasures, other than a small box of silver and silver notes, the rest had long been put away by MO Ruyue in the space.
We didnt know we were going to get food, so we didnt prepare anything.
When one of the survivors saw that they were going to be distributed food, he was so anxious that he felt all over his body, as if he could make a sack out of thin air.
I forgot to tell you just now. I wanted to give you a surprise. Then everyone, go get some bags and wooden buckets. Well try to divide the food before dark.
MO Ruyue also felt that she had been too thoughtless just now. Now, she had to make this group of people go home again.
Fortunately, everyones enthusiasm was high now. MO Ruyue hadnt finished speaking when the crowd dispersed, each hurriedly going home to get a container.
Ying, didnt we just divide the food? You pretend to be the one who remembers, and well work together.
MO Ruyue took advantage of this gap to warn Gu Ying.
No problem. Just do as weve prepared.
When Gu Ying was distributing the food to the women, he had already calcted the total weight, type, and individual weight of all the food.
It was to quickly distribute the food when such a situation urred.
Soon, the survivors who went to retrieve the containers returned.
Everyone was carrying gunny sacks and buckets, and even the worst of them was carrying a dustpan. All of them were in high spirits, and their faces were red, as if they were celebrating the New Year again.
With MO Ruyue and Gu Yings current hand sensitivity, their estimation of the weight would not be off by more than a few grams, so they did not even use any measuring tools.
Out of trust and gratitude, none of the survivors raised any objections.
No matter who took more or less, the food would be split among the entire vige. Of course, the more effort they put in, the more they would get.
Everyone was very satisfied with this distribution method.
MO Ruyue didnt know how long their unity wouldst, or if there would be conflicts of interest in the future, or if there would be internal disorganization and the possibility of falling apart.
But at least for now, such a situation was impossible. And for things that were uncertain in the future, she and Gu Ying couldnt control them for so long.
The food in the carriage was decreasing rapidly. Everyone who received the food was beaming with joy. When it was their turn to receive the food, they would be deeply grateful to MO Ruyue and express their gratitude.
MO Ruyue had already heard countless thank yous. Even though she only had a faint smile on her face, the muscles on her face were starting to be stiff and numb.
She couldnt even open her mouth to let out a wee anymore, so in the end, she simply smiled in response.
That was why it was said that it was hard to be a good person, but easy to be an evil person.
Now, she was clearly doing a good deed, but she was more tired than doing evil. This situation was really too strange.
Finally, thest bag of food was finished. Thest survivor who received the food didntin because he was thest to receive it. Instead, he thanked MO Ruyue.
Lady Qin, youre really a Bodhisattva who has descended from the heavens to the mortal world. Its all thanks to you and Young Master Ying that were able to survive. Its hard to repay such a great favor. In the future, well work like your cows and horses for the two of you, and well have noints!
His oath attracted a lot of agreement.
All the people who had received the food did not leave. Instead, they stood in ce and waited.
Although MO Ruyue didnt know what they were waiting for, she couldnt pretend to be indifferent when she saw them saying that they wanted to repay the favor.
If all of you can live well and support each other to live on, then youll be repaying me and Gu Ying. After all, this is the reason we saved you.
With MO Ruyues current ability, she could get anything she wanted. She didnt care about getting any favor repaid.
Dont worry, weve all gone through life and death together, were already a family. Were a family, so well all live well!
Everyone nodded in agreement. This made MO Ruyue also nod in satisfaction.
Then, lets split the money.
We still need to split the money?
When the survivors heard this, they were all stunned.
It was already hard enough to distribute the food with them, and now they had to distribute the money?
Chapter 435 - 435: More And More Human-like
Chapter 435: More And More Human-like
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
What money? Why do we have to split the money?
Some peoples minds were in a mess. When MO Ruyue announced the good news just now, they only heard that there was food and not money.
You cant do that, Lady Qin.
The old man who maintained the order was surnamed Mi. He was the oldest among the survivors except for Deng Feng, and his words carried some weight.
Lady Qin, were already content that youre willing to share the most precious food with us, how can we still take your money!
Thats right. We cant take your money. In the future, you two will still have to leave this ce and continue to head north. Theres plenty of money that you can get. Dont use it on us.
Someone echoed, but he identally mentioned that MO Ruyue would eventually leave, which made all the survivors silent.
No one wanted to admit it, but they couldnt avoid this fact.
Now that it was being mentioned, it was the same as facing that moment in advance.
Since we can make the decision to split the money, we naturally consider ourselves first. As long as you guys live well, it will be worthy of our efforts.
I dont know if the governments rescue will arrive, and I dont know when they will arrive. Maybe you wont need this money for a long time, but Its better than nothing.
And since weve already brought up that matter, Ill talk about it. After the spring sowing is over, Gu Ying and I will be leaving.
This was a decision that MO Ruyue had made a long time ago. She was originally prepared to wait until the sowing was over, but now that she had the opportunity, there was no harm in saying it in advance.
Everyone looked at each other again. No one had expected to hear such unexpected news at such a happy time.
Alright, weve already wasted too much of your time. Perhaps there are still rtives and friends waiting for you to meet up in the north. Were really grateful and cant force you to stay any longer.
Uncle Mi forced a smile and said after a long while. Before he finished speaking, his eyes had already turned red.
Well, alright, lets not talk about this for now. Lets follow the order just now. Everyone,e and collect your money. ording to the number of people, everyone will get five taels of silver and ten taels of silver notes. Regardless of men, women, old and young, everyone will receive it.
While MO Ruyue was speaking, Gu Ying had already walked into the carriage and carried out the only remaining small box.
When the lid was opened, it revealed a thick stack of silver notes and a small mountain of broken silver.
Of course, not all of the silver notes that MO Ruyue received were ten taels. She had exchanged them from her own safe.
The sound of people swallowing their saliva came from the crowd. Even after the natural disaster, some people still couldnt help but show their desire to keep the money for themselves when they saw it.
These people had never seen so much silver and silver notes piled together before. Even if it was just a pile of broken silver, five taels of silver each added up was not a small sum.
Ten Fifteen taels of silver? Too much, theres really too much!
Uncle MIs lips and hands were trembling.
He had been the first to receive the food just now, and now he was the first to receive the silver.
When MO Ruyue ced the silver pieces and silver notes in his hands, his hands trembled so much that he almost dropped the silver pieces to the ground.
Not much, but when everything returns to normal in the future, it can help you get through the most difficult time.
MO Ruyue helped him close his hands and held the silver inside properly as he consoled him in a warm voice.
The people behind him had already consciously lined up, and at this time, they were waiting quietly without making a noise. No one showed any impatience.
After sending Uncle Mi off, the distribution ceremony seemed to be even faster.
Everyone received their own share of the money, not even a child was left behind.
This time, no one continued to stay in the square. Instead. as soon as they received the money, they immediately took their food and hurried home.
Very quickly, the survivors had all left, leaving only MO Ruyue and Gu Ying standing in the carriage.
Alright, Ive finished distributing the items. It turns out that its not only good to earn money, but its even better to distribute money.
MO Ruyues emotional sigh made Gu Yingugh. You used to be very good at giving out money. You spent hundreds of thousands of dors a night, but you didnt look so emotional.
Hey, you can say whatever you want, but why did you have to expose me!
MO Ruyue said with a deliberately startled tone, but the smile in her eyes betrayed her true feelings.
Okay, I wont say anything. Im the one who spent hundreds of thousands of Yuan a night. Im self-exposing.
Gu Ying said dotingly.
As long as MO Ruyue was happy, he wouldnt mind even if he had to go to heaven or to hell. It wasnt difficult for him to change his words and mock himself.
But in your opinion, peoples desire for money still prevailed. When we were distributing the grain, they still had the mood to thank me. Now that theyve received the money, theyre in a hurry to go back and hide. How interesting.
When MO Ruyue thought of the scene she had just seen, a new emotion rose in her heart.
Thats normal. People will starve to death without food, and they will also starve to death without money. However, inparison, when food is satisfied, the desire for money will emerge and prevail.
Fifteen taels of silver is enough for a family of five to livefortably for two to three years. This is a huge sum of money, so of course it has to be carefully hidden.
When Gu Ying said this, he suddenly seemed to hesitate.
Whats the matter? You seem to have something to say.
MO Ruyue keenly sensed that he wanted to say something but stopped, so she took the initiative to ask, If you have something to say, just say it. What else do you need to consider?
Bing Er, its good that you give everyone the money equally, but isnt that a hidden danger?
I mean, there are young children and elderly people among them. Do they really have the ability to keep the money that belongs to them?
As Gu Ying spoke, his voice gradually became softer. Looking at MO Ruyues half-smile, he couldnt help but touch her face.
Whats wrong? Is there a flower on my face?
No, but itll be soon!
MO Ruyue burst outughing and reached out to hold his arm.
Gu Ying, havent you realized that youre bing more and more humane?
Even the long words you said just now were for the sake of others. In the past, besides me, who else did you care about?
Bing Er, youre number one in my heart now, and youll always be!
Gu Ying clearly misunderstood MO Ruyues words and immediately expressed his attitude.
MO Ruyue listened to his confession and the dimples on her face deepened. She looked even sweeter.
The survivors vige was particrly lively that night. As soon as night fell, a bonfire was lit at the entrance of the vige.
The vigers gathered around the bonfire, sometimes talking andughing, sometimes dancing.
In the south, some ethnic groups would dance to the moon during the Harvest Festival. They would also drinkrge bowls of wine and eatrge mouthfuls of meat to vent the joy of the harvest.
After the natural disaster, the survivors had been living in poverty and despair.
If they werent lucky enough to meet Lady Qin again, they would probably have turned into a pile of white bones by now.
After experiencing the life-and-death escape outside the small town, they were actually very content to be able to settle down in this small vige.
Who knew that there would be a surprise after this?
When Lady Qin and Young Master Ying went out once, they would bring back arge number of life-saving food and a certain amount of money. For the survivors, this was of course a great news as if they had been reborn..
Chapter 436 - 436: Division Of Labor And Cooperation
Chapter 436: Division Of Labor And Cooperation
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
In order to thank MO Ruyue and Gu Ying, and also to bid farewell to those days when they struggled at deaths door, and to get a good auspicious start.
After seeking MO Ruyues opinion, Uncle Mi gathered all the survivors, lit a bonfire, and began to pray to the moon.
In her previous life, MO Ruyue had also participated in various bonfire parties abroad. At that time, she really liked the feeling of drinking and dancing by the bonfire.
Perhaps it was because she had been in the cold darkness for too long, she would asionally get close to something that could give her warmth. Other than Gu Ying, the only thing that could give her warmth was fire.
Now that time and space had changed, her identity and appearance had also changed, but her closeness to fire had not decreased at all.
Bing Er, you should go and join them.
Gu Ying still didnt like to join in the fun, but he really wanted to see MO Ruyues heartfelt smile. Seeing that she was somewhat eager to watch the people dancing by the bonfire, he encouraged her.
No, Ill stay here with you and watch over them.
MO Ruyue shook her head and snuggled into Gu Yings arms.
Were going to leave soon, and maybe we wont have any more interactions in this life, so why should we be so deeply tied together?
She had always been a rational person, so she could always keep a calm mind and make the most appropriate judgment.
Alright, lets just wait and see.
Gu Ying almost never retorted her opinion, so he naturally agreed. After a while, a young girl left the crowd and ran toward them.
Lady Qin, Young Master Ying,e and dance with us.
The little girls face was red, and the corners of her eyes and eyebrows were all smiling. When she looked at the two people talking, she was shy.
The pair of celestial-like people in front of her were really beautiful. Even the celestials in the paintings looked like this, right?
No, Im a little tired. Seeing that youre going to go back and rest after ying for a while, you should have fun.
MO Ruyue shook her head and did not ept the little girls invitation.
Youre tired? Then you really need to rest well. Health is the most important! When the little girl heard this, her expression immediately became nervous.
During this period of time, Lady Qin and Young Master Ying had been running here and there for everyones affairs, and they had to worry about it. It couldnt be that they were exhausted because of this, right?
MO Ruyue saw her worried eyes and knew what she was thinking.
Dont think too much. Its just that Im a little tired after sitting in the carriage for a long time. Ill naturally be fine after sleeping for a night.
She blurted out a word offort, and Gu Ying couldnt help but shoot her a look.
Other than the few people closest to her, he had never seen MO Ruyue take the initiative tofort anyone.
Now that she had learned to take the initiative tofort others, this improvement was too huge.
Mm, I understand. Ill go back and let everyone know. You should go and rest!
The little girl was instantly ttered by MO Ruyuesfort. She nodded repeatedly and ran to the crowd by the bonfire.
Just as MO Ruyue was about to stick to Gu Ying for a while longer, she saw that the survivors had actually started to use soil to extinguish the fire.
Very quickly, Uncle Mi walked over with a torch and said to MO Ruyue, Lady Qin, I heard that you were not feeling well? We were all worried, so we entrusted this old man toe and ask.
MO Ruyue originally just didnt want to dance by the bonfire, so she just made up an excuse. She didnt expect the survivors to actually take it seriously.
Uncle Mi, Im fine. Im just a little sleepy. Ill be fine after a nights rest.
Then you should quickly go back and rest. Weve also had our fun. Put out the bonfire early and go back to sleep. We still have to continue to plow thend and sow the seeds tomorrow morning.
Even though Uncle Mi said that, the worry in his eyes did not decrease at all. You dont have to worry. Im a doctor and I know my body best. I just need to sleep and I dont even need to take medicine.
MO Ruyue now knew why they had put out the fire. It was to not disturb her and let her rest.
She could tell from the survivors faces that they were not satisfied yet.
However, no matter how much she tried to persuade them, these people had already put out the bonfire. It was better to go along with their wishes and go back to rest.
It had just rained heavily yesterday. Although the weather was good today and the sun had been hanging in the sky, the ground was still muddy. They might not be able to work in the fields tomorrow.
MO Ruyue nned to renovate thend outside the vige and use the muddy ground to sprinkle some spirit spring water. It would certainly not arouse suspicion.
Everyone came over to greet MO Ruyue one by one, and then walked toward their respective houses, still unsatisfied.
Ying, lets water the field outside after everyone is asleep.
MO Ruyue would not let go of such a good opportunity. The earlier she finished the things here, the earlier she could embark on the next part of her journey.
Alright, but leave this matter to me. You should rest early, or go back and apany the babies.
They had been busy with the survivors affairs, and even when they returned to the space asionally, they didnt spend the night there. They just had a meal with the babies and left.
Now, the babies could only stay in the space for the time being and wait for MO Ruyue toe back. Only then would they be happier and more lively.
The two of them knew that they had been cooped up in the interspace for too long. So after they settled down in the vige, MO Ruyue would return to the interspace to apany them almost every night.
No, lets work together and divide the work. Itll be better to finish this earlier.
MO Ruyue, however, felt that this little bit of time was not a problem. Besides, thend was too muddy and not suitable for sowing immediately. It was easy to spoil the grain and vegetable seeds.
After the two finished their discussion, they turned around and drove the carriage back to the vige.
Before dawn the next day, smoke was already rising from every household in the vige.
MO Ruyue was practicing martial arts in the courtyard, but Gu Ying was nowhere to be seen.
She had been using the fire of first light since early morning. She used the two sets of fist techniques to warm up and mobilize her own life force.
There was a pot of mixed grain porridge on the kitchen stove, and a few vegetable buns with vegetable filling were cooked in the steamer next to it.
She had already had breakfast in her space, but she had to make a show for the other survivors, so she had to cook another meal after she left her space.
Of course, the food would not go to waste. She would use the excuse of making too much to distribute it to a few elderly people and children who were disabled.
It was strange to say that there should have been more young men and women surviving, but unexpectedly, the most vulnerable elderly and children survived.
Since she couldnt stay and help them farm, she would do what she could before she left.
A light sound came from behind him. Gu Ying had returned.
He got up early and rode on Little ck to the surrounding area to see if he could find any more prey to bring back.
Wild chickens and ducks could be kept in captivity toy eggs, and the chicks and ducks that hatched could continue to be fed, at least to ensure a certain amount of protein intake.
MO Ruyue turned around and saw that Gu Ying was indeed holding a huge bamboo cage with some pheasants inside.
These pheasants were not those pheasants with colorful feathers, but domestic chickens that had escaped when the natural disaster struck.
Now that they were in the cage, they didnt struggle and just stood there obediently, as if they knew they had returned to the human world..
Chapter 437 - 437: Found Your Mistress
Chapter 437: Found Your Mistress
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gu Ying, youve really found it!
MO Ruyue walked over and nced at the cage. There were roosters and hens, and there was a particrly handsome rooster that looked especially intelligent.
Bing Er, do you know how far I have walked before I found these chickens? It had to be more than fifty miles. The further north we go, the fewer disasters there are, and the number of livestock that survive is also rtively higher. I also saw a few sheep and two cows. I cant bring them back by myself, so you have to go.
Yeah, I think so too. Ill just grab them and throw them into my space. I can bring back as many as I want, but I have to be careful not to be eaten by wolves or leopards.
MO Ruyues eyes lit up when she heard that there were sheep and cattle.
This was a precious item. A mountain vige with livestock would have the vitality and appearance of a mountain vige.
Ill draw the map for you. You can ride Big ck ande back earlier.
As Gu Ying spoke, he had already picked up a wooden stick and started drawing on the ground.
Remembering the way was the most basic life-saving skill for top assassins like them.
So he effortlessly drew the route to find the livestock, and when he stopped, mo Ruhan had also engraved the route into his mind.
Alright, the porridge and buns in the pot are ready. Send them to the elderly and orphans in the vige. Ill go and bring the sheep and cattle back.
MO Ruyue gave a simple reminder, then directly went to hold Big cks hand and ran to the ce that Gu Ying had mentioned.
GuYing had just returned from distributing the congee and buns when he saw Uncle Mi standing at the entrance of the courtyard, looking around. Once he saw him return, he came up to wee him.
Young Master Ying, I just saw Lady Qin riding out on a horse. Why didnt you two rest for a while?
Shes busy. Shell be back in a while?
Gu Ying said briefly, but he didnt say the real reason why MO Ruyue left.
It wasnt that he wanted to hide it, but unless it was necessary, he would keep his conversation with people other than MO Ruyue as short as possible.
Oh, I didnte for anything else. I was just thinking about Lady Qins health. Does she feel better?
Uncle Mi asked with concern.
Im fine. Thank you for your concern.
Thats good. This old man still has to go to the fields, so I wont disturb you any longer.
After saying that, Uncle Mi cupped his fists at Gu Ying and turned to leave with his hoe.
From where he was standing, he could see the entire courtyard, so it was impossible for him not to see the cage of chickens in the courtyard. However, other than seriously asking Gu Ying, he really did not seem to care about those chickens.
Gu Ying didnt say anything. He carried the chicken cage back to the house and waited for MO Ruyue to return.
The entire morning was about to pass, but MO Ruyue still had no intention ofing back.
Could it be that something happened on the way?
One terrifying scene after another began to sh through Gu Yings mind uncontrobly. He quickly shook his head and spat a few times.
The bad things didnt work, and the good things worked. There should be some other things that dyed it.
He patiently waited for the time it took to make a cup of tea. Finally, he couldnt help but stand up and fly away with Little ck.
Gu Ying ran north ording to the route in his memory. After running for about twenty miles, he suddenly stopped his ck horse.
Little ck let out a long neigh, stood up on its hind legs, and kicked its front hooves in the air a few times before it stopped.
There was a string of familiar hoofprints on the ground. It looked like they wereing back from the north, but when they got here, it suddenly became a messy pile of hoofprints.
There were sheep and cattle, horses, and even wolves!
No way, did something really happen to Bing Er?
Gu Ying muttered to himself, feeling even more anxious.
ording to MO Ruyues temperament, she hated trouble the most. Once she found those sheep and cattle, she would definitely send them into the space.
Even if it was just for show, they would only release the goats and cows near the vige.
But now, they were still more than 20 miles away from the vige. It would be too strange to let out the cattle and sheep, not to mention the wolf paw prints.
However, Gu Ying could tell at a nce that the wolf paw print was extremelyrge. It should have been left behind by the giant wolves that lived in the space.
There werent many of them, only two or three.
But why did MO Ruyue suddenly release the cows, sheep, and even the wolves?
He squatted on the ground and carefully distinguished the messy marks, trying to find all the clues and not miss any clues.
MO Ruyue had probably been sitting on the horse the whole time and had note down.
None of the marks on the ground had her footprints, and there were no traces of her using martial arts.
All the marks pointed to a small path, and that small path led to a barren mountain at the side.
It was called a barren mountain because more than half of the trees on the mountain had been burnt, and the rest were holding on half-dead.
There were a few lucky ones that had even sprouted after yesterdays spring rain.
A thought suddenly appeared in Gu Yings mind, but he couldnt be sure if this thought was correct.
If he wanted to verify it, he would naturally have to personally go over and take a look.
He mounted the horse again and patted Little cks neck. Lees go and find your mistress and Big ck!
Little ck raised its head and snorted a few more times. Then, it rushed out like a ck lightning.
After running along the mountain for a while, Little ck turned into a small path halfway up the mountain.
Although it was called a small path, it was actually a beast path created by the hooves of beasts.
On both sides were mountain walls. If one looked up, they would be crushed by the mountain rocks. That suffocating pressure could easily make timid people shrink back and not dare to walk in.
As the space was too narrow, Gu Ying had no choice but to jump off the horse and walk forward with Little ck.
The hoofprints and pawprints on the ground had already ovepped, but there were still no Lin Xis footprints. It seemed that she had not dismounted from her horse when she had walked through this small path.
After walking forward for about the time it takes for an incense stick to burn, the area in front of Gu Ying suddenly opened up. In front of him was a Green Valley.
Although the valley was notrge, only the size of a few football fields, the dense grass made peoples eyes light up, and the smell of grass in the air was refreshing.
Gu Ying was stunned. He didnt expect to see such a dense green in a ce that had experienced a natural disaster.
It was as if this ce was a paradise,pletely unaffected. Even in such cold weather, it was still full of vitality.
He judged that there must be resources like hot springs and geothermal energy under thisyer, which was why these nts could still grow so luxuriantly even when the early spring had just arrived and the cold ofte spring was still powerful.
Gu Ying was lost in his thoughts when he suddenly heard a series of small footsteps approaching quickly.
A cold light shed at his fingertips, and a few small knives almost flew out of his hands.
A series of rustling sounds came from the grass, and a giant wolf came out from inside. It shook its head and wagged its tail at the lone shadow, very affectionately.
Hey, its you. Did you smell my scent, so you came to pick me up?
Although Gu Ying was cold to humans, he was very close to animals.
He squatted down, his eyes parallel to the wolfs, and reached out to rub its head and neck.
The giant wolf moaned coquettishly, then turned around and ran a few steps. It turned to look at Gu Ying, as if signaling him to follow..
Chapter 438 - 438: You Can ‘t Have Both The Bear Paw And The
Chapter 438: You Can t Have Both The Bear Paw And The
Fish
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gu Ying mounted the horse and squeezed the horses belly. Little ck shot out like lightning and followed behind the giant wolf.
Not long after, he saw MO Ruyue sitting on a big rock under a tree in the distance. He had a grass stem in his mouth and looked over when he heard the sound of horse hooves.
Gu Ying!
She waved at Gu Ying, still sitting on the stone.
Gu Ying got up from the horses back. The tip of his foot tapped lightly on the horses back and he used the momentum to fly out. Like a giant eagle gliding down, hended nimbly beside MO Ruyue.
Without the control of the person on its back, Little ck gradually slowed down after running for a while. It turned and ran to Big ck, who was not far away, and began to leisurely eat the grass with it.
Bing Er, how did you find this ce?
As soon as Gu Yingnded, he felt a weight in his arms. The woman who had been sitting on the stone rushed into his arms like a swallow returning to the forest and held him tightly.
Gu Ying, are you worried about me? Its my fault. I just wanted to feed these cattle and sheep first before going back. I didnt think that you would be worried about me. Im sorry.
Her apology made Gu Ying a little flustered, and he didnt know whether to hold her tightly or let her go first.
Ying, why are you as stiff as a piece of wood? Did I scare you?
MO Ruyue chuckled and raised her head from Gu Yings arms. She looked at him with a smile like a flower, her eyes full of slyness.
Youre teasing me again.
Seeing that she didnt have any negative emotions on her face, Gu Yings suspended heart finally rxed.
The corners of his lips curled up slightly, and a gentle ripple appeared in his eye S.
He suddenly lowered his head, the tip of his nose gently rubbing against MO Ruyues, and then he urately kissed her red lips.
There was a touch of pink cream in the spring. The buzz didnt go away for a long time.
Gu Ying, Im thinking that its been a long time since weve been alone. Its not a bad thing to take this opportunity to rx.
MO Ruyuezily snuggled in Gu Yings arms. The two of them sat together on the big rock and looked at the cows, sheep, and horses leisurely eating grass in the distance. It was as if time was peaceful and no natural or man-made disasters had happened.
Yes, I originally estimated that you should be back by now, but I didnt see you, so I came out to look for you.
I dont think theres anyone who can threaten you, but Im also afraid that there will be an ident. But when I saw the giant wolfs paw print, I felt that you should have gone to graze.
Gu Ying recounted his feelings of not knowing whether tough or cry at that time. Originally, he thought that the giant wolf was released to be used as a bodyguard or a fighting force. Who would have thought that it would be used by MO Ruhan as a shepherd dog?
Well, it wasnt me who discovered this valley, but these cows and sheep.
MO Ruyue stretched out her hand and pointed into the distance, Do you see that sturdy yellow ox? It kept turning its stomach, and grass roots were falling out of its mouth. When I chased them here, these cattle and sheep were running into the mountains under the lead of the big yellow ox.
I thought they must have found a source of food, so I followed them to take a look. As for the giant wolves, it was to prevent them from running away.
There must be geothermal energy under this valley, or else such a lush grasnd wouldnt have been formed. Bing Er, did you find the hot spring?
Gu Ying looked in the direction he came from and judged that the tree was already in thetter half of the valley. But when he looked further, he didnt see any ce where white smoke was rising.
Ive looked around the entire valley, and there are no hot springs. If there are, Ill soak in it for a while longer and enjoy it.
MO Ruyue shook her head and said regretfully.
When she saw the grass in the valley, her first thought was not that she had found a source of food for the cattle and sheep, but that there might be a hot spring here, and she could take a good bath.
However, the higher the expectations, the greater the disappointment.
After walking through the entire valley, she didnt see any traces of hot springs. Even if there were, she didnt know where it was in this mountain. She still had to wait for Gu Ying to find her and couldnt leave so easily.
When we get to the north, lets find a ce with a hot spring and have a good bath.
Gu Ying stroked her hair tofort her. He looked at the grasnd in front of him and said with some regret, Its a pity that this valley isnt hidden and its a little small. Otherwise, it would be good to migrate the survivors here.
This was a natural grasnd with geothermal energy. It was still as warm as spring even in winter.
However, it was almost impossible for the old, weak, and sick to build a strong enough house here.
It seemed like she really couldnt have both.
The two of them lingered in the valley for a while. When they saw that the cattle and sheep had eaten their fill and were lying down on the grass, they finally stood up.
Its time to go back. Otherwise, theyll be worried about where were going.
After all, you and I didnt leave behind any words when we left.
Gu Ying whistled, and the giant wolf that was lying in the distance suddenly stood up. It assumed an ambush posture and slowly approached the cattle and He was really used as a shepherd dog by the two, and the effect was actually not inferior to that of a well-trained shepherd dog.
The cattle and sheep that had been leisurely ruminating immediately stood up and gathered together. They squeezed together nervously and restlessly, tightly huddled into a ball.
Wait, let me harvest some fodder first, so that the vige doesnt need to bring cattle and sheep here for grazing for the time being. It wont be toote toe back when the spring plowing and sowing are over and I can catch my breath.
MO Ruyues considerations were very thorough, and Gu Ying agreed with him.
She didnt need a sickle to harvest the grass. She only needed to touch the grass with her hand and she could put the nearby grass into her space. This was more efficient than arge cutting machine.
Of course, for the sake of future development, she didnt pull the grass out from the roots. She only used the spaces natural cutting ability to cut off the stem, leaving the roots in the soil.
This way, a new grasnd would grow in the near future.
After half an hour, she had harvested enough fodder. It was more than enough to feed this herd of cattle and sheep for another week.
She packed up all the grass in her interspace and was prepared to put them in the carriage she brought after they left the valley.
The narrow and winding path outside was too narrow, so she had left the carriage in a safe ce outside before riding in on Big ck.
After the preparations were done, the two of them came out of the valley. With the help of the giant wolf, the cattle and sheep obediently followed them, not daring to run around.
After leaving the valley, MO Ruyue put the grass on the carriage, and after being friendly with a few giant wolves, she put them back into the space.
For the rest of the journey, the two of them drove the cattle and sheep back to the vige.
As expected, the things that the two brought back once again caused a stir in the entire vige. The people who were originally working in the fields outside the vige stopped their work and looked at the herd of cattle and sheep in shock..
Chapter 439 - 439: The Suffering Will Eventually Pass
Chapter 439: The Suffering Will Eventually Pass
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Qin Lady Qin, youre Where did you get the cows and sheep?
After Deng Feng was injured, Uncle Mi had be the leader of the survivors, so he was the first toe back to his senses and walked to the ridge to ask MO Ruyue.
I just went out for a walk and met them by ident. At first, there were only a few of them, but after looking carefully, I only found these. There arent many.
MO Ruyue said lightly.
But her calm tone sounded like a fairy tale, at least the survivors were stunned.
To be able to find a herd of cattle and sheep just by strolling around, how lucky was he?
It seemed that yesterday, Lady Qin and Young Master Ying had gone out for a trip and brought back enough food and property for everyone to tide over the crisis.
So it turned out that so many good things could really be found by luck?
No matter what the survivors were thinking, at least MO Ruyue had brought back something good. And the mountain of grass in the carriage behind them made everyone even more speechless.
Uncle Mi, theres a small valley thats easy to find a few miles away from here. Its probably because of the geothermal energy, so its covered with grass. Its a good pasture.
We wont have to worry about the problem of food for the animals in the future, but we have to take care of the grasnds. That valley isnt that big. If the grass is eaten up, there wont be a second suitable grasnd to find.
MO Ruyue exined the situation in detail, and specifically pointed out the damage the two livestock had done to the pasture.
Of course, this was a problem that the survivors would have to consider in the future. She could only talk about it briefly. How they would live in the future depended on their own considerations and ns.
Just as MO Ruyue had said, the two of them would have to leave eventually. There would be all kinds of idents and difficulties in the future. They could only help for a while, not forever.
Lady Qin, are these cows and sheep also for us?
Uncle Mi had guessed this, but he still asked with uncertainty.
Thats right, its naturally for you. Otherwise, do you think were going to drive a herd of cows and sheep on the road? If you dont want them, you can set them free.
MO Ruyue deliberately teased.
No, no, of course I want it. How can I not want it?
Uncle Mi blurted out immediately. When he saw the slyness that shed across MO Ruyues eyes, he realized that he had been teased by her.
Haha, Uncle Mi, dont worry. Its just that these cows and sheep need to be ced in a suitable ce Otherwise, lets not talk about whether they will attract any hungry wild beasts. Even if they sneak away in the middle of the night, you wont know.
If thats the case, Ive wasted my efforts to get them back, and Ive even gotten this pile of fodder.
MO Ruyues words reminded Uncle Mi, and he immediately said, Lady Qin, dont worry! I used to herd sheep for thendlord, so I have experience in both sheep and cattle. Just leave it to me.
Thats great. There are still some abandoned courtyards in the vige. Some of the cattle and sheep pens can be used after a little cleaning and reinforcement. Its very convenient.
MO Ruyue jumped off the carriage very readily and handed the reins to Uncle
Mi. As for the cows and sheep, they all followed behind the carriage, stretching their mouths to get a bite of the grass on the carriage, so they naturally followed the carriage.
Uncle Mi warned the survivors who were working in the fields and then drove the carriage to the vige.
Lady Qin, we thought we couldnt sow today. Look, thisnd was very dry yesterday, but its almost dry today. In one day, more than half of the seeds have been sown!
A woman walked over and pointed at therge piece ofnd where the work had been done and reported to MO Ruyue happily.
Not bad. If we continue at this speed, we can finish sowing soon. I think well have a good harvest this year.
MO Ruyue also smiled and nodded in agreement.
She looked at the field in front of her, as if she could already see the scene of a bumper harvest.
When she was in the Qin Vige, she had been allocated a few pieces ofnd. However, other than letting her babies grow vegetables for a few days at the beginning, she had slipped away after they had split up.
She herself had never tried the feeling of farming, but after this natural disaster, she actually got to experience it.
The spring plowing had already arrived, so she and Gu Ying could also leave.
Three dayster, all thend outside the entire survivors vige had been sown.
The farming tools that MO Ruyue had improved ording to the condition of thend were also out of the oven and distributed to everyone.
The cattle and sheep pen was also repaired. The animals were used to being kept in captivity. Now that they had returned to the side of humans, they quickly adapted to the life of a new master.
Gu Ying took some time to bring Uncle Mi to a valley with geothermal energy. Now that they had the cow queen, some of the horse carriages could be modified into ox carriages that could carry more things.
It was still too tiring to graze their livestock for more than 30 miles a day. More importantly, if they encountered other refugees on the road, there might be more unpredictable situations.
Deng Feng was determined to leave with MO Ruyue. There were only a few strong men left among the survivors. Most of them were women and children, and a few elderly people.
Such a vige had no ability to protect itself at all. It could be said that it was like a fat sheep waiting to be ughtered.
The only thing he could think of now was to reduce contact with the outside world as much as possible. Even when he went out to cut grass, he had to do it secretly in the evening or early in the morning.
This was the only way. The viges ability to protect itself was too weak.
After returning from the valley, Uncle Mi had specially brought back many grass seeds from the valley and scattered them in ces far away from the crops outside the vige.
When the weather became warmer. the nts would germinate. And everything would recover. The green grass here would also grow, so there was no need to go to the geothermal valley.
As for the other important problem-water, MO Ruyue didnt need to worry about it.
There were two wells in the vige, and when they were not in use, they were covered with a light bluestone cover. When the natural disaster struck, the two wells were miraculously not damaged.
The well water inside was still clear and sweet. It had also been tested by MO Ruyue. The well water was rich in minerals and trace elements, but there were no harmful things to the body.
She couldnt help but click her tongue in wonder. It seemed that even though the heavens had sent down such a terrifying disaster, they had still left a chance of survival for different people in different ces.
All the suffering would eventually pass, and the destruction and pain brought by the natural disasters would slowly return to the original peace and quiet as time passed.
Although thendscape had been permanently changed, as long as people had not beenpletely exterminated, they would quickly reproduce on thisnd and survive for generations.
MO Ruyue didnt want to think about things that happened so long ago. She only hoped that although the survivors in front of her had a hard time, at least they could live a stable and ordinary life and not suffer any more disasters.
On this day, when the vigers came back from work in the fields, they saw
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying standing in the square of the vige. Beside them was Deng Feng, who had not shown his face for a long time.
The smiles on everyones faces suddenly slowly disappeared. MO Ruyue didnt need to say anything. Almost everyone could vaguely guess what she wanted to say..
Chapter 440 - 440: Sleepless Night
Chapter 440: Sleepless Night
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Lady Qin, are you leaving?
Uncle Mi was now the vige chief elected by everyone, so he was the one who came out tomunicate with MO Ruyue and Gu Ying almost every time. Yes, were leaving tomorrow morning. Weve been here for too long. Its time to go.
MO Ruyue said straightforwardly without trying to find any reason or excuse for herself.
Even though the survivors had already mentally prepared themselves for this day, they still couldnt help but panic and feel dejected when it really came.
However, no one tried to persuade her to stay. Even the children in the vige knew that Lady Qins babies were still waiting for her to reunite.
They couldnt force her to stay by their side because of their selfishness.
Everything that MO Ruyue had done for them was far beyond what a stranger could do.
Even their rtives might not be able to do this. They really should not be greedy for more.
Alright, Lady Qin, you and Young Master Ying have already done too much for us. Let alone this life, even if we have to do anything for you in the next life, we are willing to do it!
Uncle Mis words came from the bottom of his heart and represented the thoughts of all the survivors.
After spending so much time with each other, they had be like a family.
Everyone knew that the only way to survive in this chaotic world was to stick together and help each other.
The woman who was so selfish that she pushed them to the disaster victims and brought them death had be the most painful lesson engraved in their memories.
Thats right, Lady Qin. We are deeply grateful to you and Young Master Ying.
If we have the chance to meet again in this life, we will definitely do our best to repay your kindness!
Lady Qin, we will set up a ranking for you and Young Master Ying. In the future, we will burn three incense sticks every day, and there will be endless incense offerings every day. We will pray to Bodhisattva and Buddha to bless you two with a long life and peace.
Lady Qin, everything we have now is bestowed by you and Young Master Ying. We will never forget this great kindness. Even if we need to repay it with our lives in the future, we will definitely not blink!
Everyone spoke one after another, expressing their gratitude to MO Ruyue and the other, promising that they would repay their kindness in the future.
Everyone did not know how to express themselves. They even wanted to dig out their hearts and show them to their two benefactors.
I appreciate everyones kindness, but theres no need to say anything about repaying my kindness.
MO Ruyue raised her hand and gestured for them to stop and listen to her.
I didnte here to ask you to repay my kindness. Its just that we used to live in the same county, so I took extra care of you.
Even if I encounter other survivors, I will still save them if I can. After all, natural disasters are heartless.
After she said this, she was stunned for a moment.
Saving people was not something a top-notch assassin would do. The words natural disasters are heartless, but people are affectionate could note out of an assassins mouth.
She was getting further and further away from her previous life, so far away that she had gradually forgotten the habits that had been engraved into her bones.
Ive been waiting here today to tell everyone this news. After all, weve been together for so long. It can be said that weve gone through life and death together. Our rtionship is different from before.
What I want to leave you with the most now is not to set up a memorial tablet for me, but to help each other through the difficulties from now on. Thats enough.
After MO Ruyue finished speaking, she realized that she seemed to have repeated herself. She turned to Deng Feng and said to everyone, Theres something else I want to tell everyone. Big Brother Deng will be leaving with me tomorrow.
The survivors seemed to have already guessed this. After MO Ruyues announcement, they did not show any surprise.
Deng Feng is a good person. He is capable, has a good character, and is passionate and forthright. It is his fortune to be able to follow Lady Qin. Uncle Mi said emotionally. Then, he turned to Deng Feng and reminded him,
Deng Feng, in the future, you will take our ce and follow Madam Qin and Young Master Ying well.
Its as if we can also follow the two benefactors. As long as we think of this, we can feel a little more at ease.
Uncle Mi, dont worry about this. I will definitely follow the two benefactors well. After I leave, you must be careful. Dont be like before the natural disaster, leaving this ce casually and trusting others easily.
Benefactor has already done his best to prepare such a safe ce for you. Compared to the disaster victims who are still wandering outside, every one of us who is lucky enough to meet benefactor is already very lucky.
Dont let our benefactors good intentions go to waste. Lets all work hard and live on!
These few sentences showed Deng Fengs standard.
He was not a vulgar country bumpkin. Instead) he was a meticulous and talented person.
MO Ruyues eyes were sharp. She had chosen him to be her and Gu Yings trusted aide at first nce. Moreover, she dared to swear on her head that Deng Feng would never betray them.
After the news was delivered, the survivors dispersed in twos and threes.
After learning that MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were leaving, tonight was destined to be a sleepless night for all the survivors.
The next morning, MO Ruyue got up.
She and Gu Ying brought nothing but two horses and a carriage.
They did not even bring the food and herbs from the vige. They were only going to take Deng Feng away.
After hearing themotion, the lights in the vige lit up one by one. Soon, all the survivors gathered outside MO Ruyues small courtyard.
Uncle Mi was holding a bag full of food and herbs. When he saw MO Ruyuee out, he immediately went up to her and stuffed the bag into her hands.
Lady Qin, you and Young Master Ying still have a long way to go, how can you not bring any rations and herbs? You must ept this. Otherwise, how can we be at ease?
Uncle Mi, even if Gu Ying and I didnt bring any rations with us, we wouldnt starve. Otherwise, how could we have brought so much food back? Dont worry.
You can keep these things for yourself. You dont have to use them on me. As long as the n is reasonable, these grains will be enough for the first crop of crops.
MO Ruyues interspace could be said to have everything she needed. Not to mention anything else, the food alone was enough to feed the people of the county town for ten lifetimes.
Therefore, it was better to leave thisrge bag of food and herbs for those who needed it the most.
This Sigh, Lady Qin, if you dont ept it, how can we be relieved? Besides, the road ahead is long. Who knows if you can find food when you need to eat at noon?
Uncle Mi still tried his best to persuade her..
Chapter 441 - 441: Repaying Gratitude
Chapter 441: Repaying Gratitude
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Sir, why dont we bring some steamed buns and cakes for our benefactors? We still have to cook when we bring food with us. Those buns and dry rations can be eaten directly. Isnt it more convenient?
An aunt said in the crowd.
She was also a person of action. As she spoke, she had already begun to squeeze out of the crowd, preparing to go home to get her rations.
Yes, this works too. It can also help with some things! Look at my brain, I cant even turn around! Uncle Mi nodded repeatedly.
Their current ingredients were very simple. They only had some porridge every day. Because they needed to maintain their strength during the spring ploughing, they had to make steamed buns and cakes. Otherwise, they would not have the energy to farm the next day.
Therefore, no matter which family it was, they could immediately take out some ready-made dry rations.
Mo Ruyue saw that they were still going to get some rations and hurriedly stopped them. Theres no need. Im leaving now. Everyone, dont be busy.
These days, Im sure everyone has a deeper understanding of my temperament. Im not the kind of person who will y games with you. If I really need it, I definitely wont refuse.
Please believe in my and Yings abilities. You dont have to worry about these necessary supplies at all. If we can get them once or twice, we can get them three or four more times.
Everyone, listen to me. I appreciate your kindness. Lets end this matter here. Although Gu Ying had been listening silently, he also nodded in agreement.
Seeing MO Ruyues attitude, Uncle Mi knew that this matter could no longer be carried out. If he continued, he was afraid that his benefactor would be impatient.
He sighed and put away the two bags. He no longer insisted that MO Ruyue ept them. He even took two steps back to make way for the carriage.
Lady Qin, since thats the case, we wont force you anymore. We only hope that you will have a safe journey and be able to reunite with your family and find a suitable ce to start anew.
We will be here to pray for you.
Deng Feng had already boarded the carriage with Gu Yings help.
With MO Ruyues special medicine, his external injuries had basically healed. However, his internal organs were severely injured at that time, and his vitality had already been damaged.
MO Ruyue did not give him any strong medicine in order to prevent him from getting sick. She only reduced the dosage and let him recuperate first. Therefore, he was still very careful when he moved and did not dare to exert too much strength.
When he heard Uncle Mis words, he couldnt help but stick his head out of the car window and say to Uncle Mi, Sir, Ill also bid farewell to everyone here.
He originally wanted to say something, but the words that were about toe out of his mouth suddenly choked up.
When it was time to leave, he looked at the men, women, and children left behind by the carriage and suddenly felt a sense of betrayal as if he had abandoned them.
This feeling was too real and profound, making Deng Feng suddenly have the idea of staying and sharing weal and woe with everyone.
However, he quickly regained his rationality.
Compared to staying behind to tide over the difficulties with everyone else, he wanted to stay by MO Ruyue and Gu Yings side and serve them loyally.
This was not only his personal gratitude, but also the gratitude of everyone below him.
He was very lucky to be chosen by MO Ruyue to stay by her side. He had to seize this opportunity to repay their kindness with practical actions, and not be like these survivors, who could only send their blessings from afar.
Thinking of this, Deng Fengs gaze became even more determined.
After a natural disaster, the topography of the affected areas had more or less changed.
The originally wide official road was mostly buried by the copsed rocks by the side of the road, and the remaining small roads became rugged and difficult to travel.
A seemingly spacious andfortable carriage slowly approached. A man was pulling the horse, carefully passing through a few more dangerous areas.
He walked another three miles and saw a rtively spacious open space by the side of the road. He looked up at the sky and stopped the carriage.
Bing Er, lets take a break. The horse has been walking for a long time, its time to rest.
The man leading the horse was Gu Ying. It had been two days since the three of them left the vige.
Alright, then lets rest here and start a fire. Warm up the chicken soup and steamed buns. Well fill our stomachs before we continue our journey.
MO Ruyue said as she jumped down from the carriage shaft. Before she could push open the carriage door, Deng Feng had already opened it and handed over two two-story food boxes.
In the past two days, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying had taken turns to look for food. They would not return empty-handed every time.
Whether it was food such as rice or noodles, or wild animals such as wild rabbits and pheasants, the food was much better than in the survivor vige.
Yes Ruyue, Ill give you some rations.
Deng Feng was still not used to addressing MO Ruyue by her name. No matter how many times she emphasized that they would address each other as siblings, he still subconsciously felt that he should be treated as a subordinate.
Therefore, he had subconsciously wanted to address her as his benefactor, but after MO Ruyue gave him a helpless look, he changed his mind. Big Brother Deng, if you call me like that again, Ill be angry. MO Ruyue said half-jokingly.
She really wanted to try what it felt like to have an elder brother.
Not everyone could enter her eyes, but once she recognized them, she would treat them like family.
However, what made her very helpless was that Deng Feng seemed to have been bound by her kindness and could not let go of the burden of wanting to repay her.
She didnt expect that in the end, she didnt recruit an elder brother, but only a loyal subordinate.
Dont, Ruyue. Its Big Brothers fault. Please dont be angry.
Deng Feng exined anxiously.
His anxious look did not seem fake. It was as if his true thoughts were written on his face.
As long as you dont call Gu Ying and me benefactors in the future, I wont be angry anymore.
MO Ruyue did not expect that she would use this method to coerce others. After saying this, she did not know whether tough or cry.
As the two of them were talking, Gu Ying had already quietly picked up some firewood and stones and started to build a stove.
There was a full set of pots and pans in the space under the seat of the carriage. When they were in the wild, they did not have to worry about not being able to find cooking utensils to boil water.
Gu Ying, Ill heat up the food. You go ahead and scout the road. Remember not to go too far. Come back early for dinner.
MO Ruyue walked over with cooking utensils and food containers, followed by Deng Feng.
Other than the fact that he couldnt do any physical work, he could still do other things like handing things or scooping rice.
In fact, he had already mentioned to MO Ruyue many times that his injuries had already healed, so he didnt need to be so cautious anymore.
In the end, she lectured him with a straight face.
Are you the doctor or am I the doctor? If I say its not enough, it means its
not enough.
MO Ruyue knew that she had overreacted. However, she could only be more careful with the person she had chosen as her elder brother.
She identally caught a glimpse of Gu Yings gloomy expression. After a moment of shock, she leaned closer to his ear and whispered, Gu Ying, smell it. It seems to have a sour smell.. Did I smell it wrong?
Chapter 442 - 442: A Pretty Good Person
Chapter 442: A Pretty Good Person
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The vegetables must have been left out for too long and have gone bad. Gu Ying said calmly. His serious look made MO Ruyue burst intoughter.
Its not summer now, and the temperature is still very low. How could it have gone bad in just one day?
She was asking the obvious, and she didnt even try to hide the smile in her eyes.
Ill go scout the way. Ill be back for dinnerter.
The tips of Gu Yings ears turned slightly red. He suddenly turned around and twisted his waist. He was already more than ten meters away like a soaring bird.
Although his posture was particrly elegant, it looked like he was running away.
This time, MO Ruyue burst outughing without restraint. Her bell-likeughter spread far and wide, as if she could catch up with Gu Ying. It also doubled his speed.
Deng Feng had also been around since long. How could he not understand the interaction between this young couple?
MO Ruyue was indeed overly cautious with him. It was no wonder that Gu Ying was a little jealous.
No matter how much he trusted her other half, it was impossible for him not to be jealous when she showed concern for another member of the opposite sex.
How could he not be jealous if he really ced her on the top of his heart?
It was also because MO Ruyue had only shown her delicate little girl side in front of Gu Ying that Deng Feng realized that she was not just cold and unapproachable.
The estrangement that Deng Feng had been unable to let go of for a long time had strangely disappeared in this little teasing.
After that, his interaction with MO Ruyue became very natural, and she was keenly aware of it.
Although MO Ruyue did not know why he had let go of his worries, she was very happy to see the current situation.
In less than an hour, Gu Ying returned.
He saw MO Ruyue and Deng Feng sitting around the stove. White steam wasing out of the pot, and the aroma of the food was spreading in the air.
Gu Ying, youre back. Just in time. Come and eat.
Even though Gu Ying had appeared silently, MO Ruyue had already noticed him.
She looked over and smiled brightly as she waved at him.
Gu Yings heart rxed, and he felt as if he had suddenly seen the light. He could not help but smile as well.
In the past, he and Bing Er only had each other in their world. He was used to being all the characters that she needed, so he had a faint hostility towards Deng Feng that he did not admit.
However, there were many people in her world now, and she had experienced many emotions that she had never experienced before. Deng Feng was also someone that he and Bing Er recognized.
So what was there to be conflicted about?
There was only one position that he would never let go of. The others There was nothing wrong with having more people to make Bing Er happier.
After shaking off the burden of his thoughts, Gu Yings footsteps became lighter and firmer.
MO Ruyue saw the silent change in the two men. She secretly nodded in her heart.
Very good, it was finally harmonious.
Ying, whats the situation up ahead?
MO Ruyue beckoned Gu Ying to sit down beside her and handed him a bowl of food.
Theres still a more difficult road ahead. Its about a dozen miles. You need to be careful and slow down. After that, it can be said to be a smooth road.
Theres a small vige on this road, and the disaster isnt very serious. If were not in a hurry, we can stay there for the night.
Gu Ying told her the news he had heard before he started to eat.
To him, that bowl of rice was just a matter of two or three mouthfuls. He swallowed it without chewing much.
We can go over and ask for some water to drink and replenish some food at the same time. Anyway, what we dontck the most is money.
MO Ruyues words could not be more convincing, but she was telling the truth.
Whether it was the annual gifts from the Bai n, the Xiao n, or the Ouyang n, or the money that MO Ruyue and Gu Ying had earned themselves, it was enough for a small city with a poption of a few thousand to livefortably for a few lifetimes.
When Gu Ying reunited with MO Ruyue, he had given her the tourmaline ring. That ring was the key to opening the private money cab of the capitals money house. The things inside were all the wealth that Gu Ying had earned with his life.
Thats good. Lets replenish our supplies and continue on our way. The integrity of the towns behind will be higher. If we want to rest, there will be many opportunities.
Gu Ying agreed with MO Ruyues suggestion, and Deng Feng would not object to it.
However, what he did not expect was that MO Ruyue would make such a suggestion. It waspletely to provide her with new ingredients as a distraction.
After a short rest, the three of them resumed their journey north.
Just as Gu Ying had said, although the small vige not far away was very small, it was almost unaffected by the natural disaster. Just like the lucky small town before, it was preserved quite well.
When the vigers heard that these three passersby were not here to beg for food, but to buy some food, chickens, ducks, and other livestock, they immediately agreed.
After learning that these three people had a huge demand, almost every household did not want to miss this opportunity. They all took out food, chickens, ducks, and rabbits from their homes. Some even gritted their teeth and contributed a milk goat.
MO Ruyue was also very generous. Food was the hard currency now, so she naturally wouldnt let the vigers suffer too much. She offered a price that the other party would find hard to refuse.
After loitering in the vige for two hours, MO Ruyue set off with a cart full of supplies.
The chickens, ducks, and rabbits were all ced in bamboo cages on the backs of Big ck and Little ck.
The milk goat was tied to the side of the carriage, but this slowed down the speed of the carriage, so it could only move forward slowly.
Ruyue, youre really capable. You managed to get so many resources in such a short time. Theres food and meat. I really dont have to worry about filling my stomach with you.
Deng Feng was full of admiration for MO Ruyue.
Although the process of getting food this time was very simple, as long as she threw money, it was not an easy thing for a penniless person. Big Brother Deng, dont praise me. I might get carried away easily.
MO Ruyue said with a smile.
With these chickens, ducks, and rabbits, the source of meat would be perfectly solved. The milk goat could also guarantee that it would provide fresh goat milk every day, which was also a pleasant surprise.
However, the legs of the milk goat were too short to keep up with the speed of the carriage. She could not always amodate the speed of the milk goat, so she had to find materials to build a small trailerter. When the time came, she could increase the speed by carrying the milk goat.
By the way, Ruyue, I remember that you have five babies at home. May I know where they are now?
Deng Feng already knew that MO Ruyue and Gu Ying had speciallye back to save them. The babies must have been entrusted to someone they could trust and were in a safe ce.
I entrusted the babies to an old couple in the vige. They are neighbors to my family and are also very close friends and rtives. They continued to go north.
MO Ruyue was also thinking about when she should bring the babies out of the space, or wait until they arrived in the capital.
Although she had already decided to add Deng Feng to her family, she did not want him to know about the existence of the space so soon. This matter had to be taken slowly.
To be able to make you trust them so much, Ruyue, that old couple must be quite good people.
Deng Feng said with certainty..
Chapter 443 - 443: How Dare You Play With Me!
Chapter 443: How Dare You y With Me!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Almost everyone in the county town knew how high MO Ruyues standards were. There were also countless people who wanted to get close to her, but in the end, they could not get in.
But now, she could say that the old couple were friends and family. This evaluation was quite high.
Yes, Uncle Liu and Aunt Liu are indeed very good people. Brother Deng, youll know when you get along in the future.
After weighing the pros and cons in her heart, MO Ruyue decided to think about this problem after they reached a safer ce.
In order to reduce the chances of encountering the refugees, Gu Ying would
first scout the way. If there were arge number of refugees passing by, he would wait for a night before going or choose another route.
Because of this, they had never encountered arge number of disaster victims along the way.
However, MO Ruyue would lend a helping hand to some scattered disaster victims by giving them some rice, flour, and dry rations. Sometimes, she would also provide some meat to the elderly and children.
Although it was a drop in the bucket, it gave those people a chance to survive.
They walked slowly for another three days. The towns and viges along the way were getting less and less affected, which meant that they had already left therge area of the affected area.
It was only at this moment that MO Ruyue saw the disaster relief team heading south again.
Such a team would always have soldiers guarding them to prevent the starving victims from snatching the relief supplies.
Sometimes, when MO Ruyue met such a group head-on, Gu Ying would drive the carriage to the side and make way.
Gu Ying, look. This kind of disaster relief efficiency is iparable to the previous life. How long has it been? Whether its those who are seriously injured or those who dont have food, the people who cant take it anymore have already turned into a pile of bones.
MO Ruyue sat on the shaft of the carriage and whispered to Gu Ying.
After all This isnt that country.
Gu Ying shook his head. The twopletely different systems had already determined that the rescue efforts could not bepared at all.
Yeah, by the time the higher-ups send someone over, the daylily would have already turned cold.
As MO Ruyue was speaking, a man who happened to pass by them on a horse suddenly stopped his horse and turned to stare at them coldly. Who are you? How dare you talk about The Imperial Courts disaster relief? Arent you afraid ofmitting the crime of deceiving the emperor?
MO Ruyue was slightly startled.
The conversation between her and Gu Ying was almost like a whisper. The carriage was by the side of the road, and there was still some distance from the middle of the road. There were also the footsteps of the rescue team, the sound of hooves, and the sound of wheels. There was a lot of noise interference.
Even so, that man could still hear the conversation between her and Gu Ying when they brushed past each other. He must be an expert with deep internal energy.
She sized up the man.
He sat upright on the horse, his long legs holding the horses belly. If the horse was a little short, the tip of his toes might have touched the ground.
Judging from his height, he was almost two meters tall, almost ten centimeters taller than Gu Ying.
Such a height would be an existence that people would look up to in the future, not to mention in such an era where the average height was the same. This man could be said to be a giant.
His face was firm and his lips were pursed in a straight line. The corners of his lips were slightly drooping.
Judging from his appearance, this person was definitely a stubborn person. Moreover, he was the kind of stubborn donkey that would not turn back until he hit a south wall.
MO Ruyue had only casually nced at him, but she didnt know what she had seen. Suddenly, her eyes narrowed, and she carefully scrutinized him for a few more times.
Bing Er, what are you looking at?
Gu Ying stared at MO Ruyues side profile, his voice full of jealousy.
It was fine if she usually joked or stared at Deng Feng with excessive concern, but now she was staring at a strange man and lost her mind. This made him somewhat unable to ept it.
MO Ruyue had a vague idea shing in her mind, but she couldnt grasp it. With Gu Yings interruption, itpletely disappeared.
Just as she was about to speak, the two of thems eyes darkened at the same time. They both somersaulted backward to the sides.
A whip exploded in the air where they were originally sitting. Even though the horses in the carriage were well-trained, they were shocked by the sound of the whip and retreated a few steps.
Deng Feng had been resting in the carriage with his eyes closed, but he almost fell out of the carriage.
Im talking to you, cant you hear me?
The tall man rode his horse and stood not far away from Mo Ruyues carriage. He stared coldly at the two people who were standing five meters away from each other on both sides of the carriage. His pupils constricted, and his eyes grew colder.
I dont care what marquis you are. So what if you have power? Scolding and beating the people just like that, right?
What kind of temper did MO Ruyue have? If he were to provoke her, she could even kill the emperor, let alone a mere marquis.
In her previous life, countless influential figures had died in her hands. Even if the man in front of her was a tough nut to crack, if she wanted his life, he had to obediently leave it behind.
Presumptuous! Amoner dares to spout nonsense in front of me?
The man let out a thunderous roar and pped the saddle under him. He had already soared into the sky, and the horses front legs went soft from his p, and it half-knelt down with a thud.
His figure was like lightning. Although he was unusually tall, he was not clumsy at all. Instead, he was unbelievably agile.
He leaped up and pounced straight at MO Ruyue, bringing with it a piercing sound.
Gu Ying shot out at the same time as the man moved. He punched the mans vital point on his back. He did not hesitate at all because of the mans noble status.
MO Ruyue remained as still as a mountain. Her eyes were fixed on the figure that had arrived in the blink of an eye. Suddenly, she gradually turned her toes slightly and brushed past the mans side, deftly dodging his attack.
The mans reaction was also very fast. Before he could finish his previous move, he flipped his hand and hooked his hand to grab MO Ruyues wrist.
He twisted his waist and did a side somersault to avoid Gu Yings fist that was behind him. Then, he began to press on MO Ruyue.
Even so, the look of surprise on his face grew stronger and stronger.
Originally, he thought that the man and woman in front of him were just fools who didnt know the immensity of heaven and earth. He didnt expect that experts would know whether they had it or not when they made a move. With just a few moves, he realized that the skills of these two people could be said to be unfathomable.
Qin Xiaofeng, the Marquis of Weiyuan, was known as the Undefeated God of
War. Not only had he never experienced defeat on the battlefield, but he had
also never lost even when he roamed the martial world and fought against those martial artists and sect members.
However, after a few moves today, he realized that not only would he not be able to take down the couple in front of him, he might even suffer his first or second defeat in ten moves.
No matter how greatly shocked Qin Xiaofeng was in his heart, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying still dealt with him with ease.
No, to be precise, it was more like they was teasing him unscrupulously after figuring out his background.
This realization made Qin Xiaofengs hair stand on end, and the gaze he stared at the two of them became even colder.
You actually dare to y with me!
MO Ruyue interrupted him impatiently before he could finish his sentence.
Cut the crap. If you want to fight, then fight. Let your fists speak! If you cant do it, you can call your subordinates to gang up on me!
She had thought that this man was the kind of person who would only hit but not force himself. She did not expect him to be full of nonsense..
Chapter 444 - 444: Save These Words To Lie To A Ghost
Chapter 444: Save These Words To Lie To A Ghost
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gu Ying didnt say a word. Like a ghost, he stuck close to the tall mans back. His fists didnt leave his vital point, but they couldnt touch it.
His intention was simple and crude. He was using his actions to tell the tall man: I can kill you at any time!
The situation was in a stalemate.
Qin Xiaofeng suddenly turned around and waved at Gu Ying, but twisted his feet in the opposite direction. His entire body once again rose into the air, and he only stopped after floating four to five meters away.
Mo Ruyue and GuYing withdrew their hands almost at the same time. They looked at the tall man leisurely. Their bodies were wide open and full of ws, as if they were tempting him to break in and advance rashly.
Who are you people? Quickly report your name!
Qin Xiaofengs eyes became more cautious and less arrogant. However, he still maintained a certain degree of vignce towards MO Ruyue and the other man.
Were just two ordinary people. Weve never met before, so we should have minded our own business. However, since you provoked us first, we are not pushovers. We wont let you manipte us.
MO Ruyue said in a tone that was neither servile nor overbearing. It waspletely impossible to tell that she was afraid of Qin Xiaofengs identity.
Since you are amoner, you should know that it is a serious crime to discuss the matters of The Imperial Court. It is not that I am provoking you, but that you have already broken thew.
Qin Xiaofeng did not know why he had to exin to these two people. Perhaps it was because of their skills that they had the qualifications to talk to him on equal terms.
Oh? If I tell the truth, is it wrong to discuss the matters of The Imperial Court?
MO Ruyue raised her eyebrows and said sarcastically, If you dont want to be talked about, then be quick to save people!
Qin Xiaofengs face stiffened. He was rendered speechless by MO Ruyues words.
It had been more than a month since the natural disasters suddenly fell before the Lantern Festival and the relief supplies from The Imperial Court were sent to the affected areas in the south.
To put it bluntly, even if there were some who managed to escape from the natural disaster, there were countless who died fromck of clothes, food, and of cold during this period of time. They had long turned into piles of bones.
The Imperial Court It takes time to gather food and property for disaster relief.
Qin Xiaofeng only said a sentence after a long while, but he also felt that his words were not confident enough, so much so that his voice was almost inaudible by the end.
Yes, the Imperial Court needs time to gather resources. May I ask Lord Marquis, how long does it take for a person to starve to death? Regardless of the men in their prime, how long will it take for the old, the weak, women, and children to starve to death?
Or perhaps they can survive on the northwest wind until someone from The Imperial Courtes to save them?
MO Ruyues sarcastic tone became even more pronounced.
She also felt that it was extremely ironic that such words came from the mouth of a former top-notch assassin.
A person who had once been the most indifferent to life was now running and speaking for the survival of another group of people who had nothing to do with her.
It was truly a world full of wonders.
Qin Xiaofeng waspletely silent. After a long time, he cupped his fists at MO Ruyue and said, This one is Qin Xiaofeng. Seeing that the two of you came from the south, I believe that you have a lot of knowledge about the situation there. I hope that you wont be stingy with your teachings.
He was a man who was flexible!
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying looked at each other and saw the same conclusion in each others eyes.
She had originally thought that this man was just a boorish man who relied on his status. She had not expected that with his status as a marquis, he would be able to lower his stance so quickly. It was rare.
Marquis Qin, I want to know, are you really ignorant of the disaster in the south? Its been more than a month since the natural disaster happened. Didnt anyone send someone to the disaster site to investigate?
MO Ruyue did not answer him immediately. Instead, she asked a sharp question.
How can we not send someone to investigate such a natural disaster? Many of the southern towns had lost contact with the government, and it was difficult to calcte the exact number of casualties. The Imperial Courts disaster relief naturally begins with the areas that suffered the most.
I receive thetest disaster reports every day and Im worried. Those are the people of my dynasty. I didnt expect that the disaster would hurt their lives, but I can only stand by and do nothing. IVs really
Qin Xiaofengs eyes revealed a deep pain. It seemed that those words just now had indeede from the bottom of his heart, and not a clich said to highlight his image.
Wee from a small county in the south. IVs a hundred miles away from Ping City. Its the ce with the most serious natural disasters. The entire county has been destroyed.
There are less than ten percent of the viges and towns nearby. The scene is extremely tragic. My husband and I were lucky enough to escape a cmity outside. After the natural disaster ended, we returned to our hometown to rescue them. However, our ability is limited, and there are only a few people who can be saved.
After MO Ruyue heard his words, she happily recounted what she had seen and heard during this period of time.
Lord Marquis, this lowly one is willing to be a witness!
A firm and steady voice came from the carriage. The carriage door opened) and Deng Feng walked out and jumped off the carriage. He respectfully cupped his fists towards Qin Xiaofeng.
And who are you?
This little one is thisdys Brother, when the natural disaster suddenly struck, it was my adopted sister and brother-inw who saved the only survivors in the county, including the little one.
After that, thanks to my righteous sisters high regard, she brought this little one along with her to the north and saved many disaster victims along the way. This lowly one is willing to use my head to guarantee that everything I say is true and not the slightest lie!
Deng Fengs words made Qin Xiaofeng nod repeatedly.
He could tell from his firm gaze that thismoner was telling the truth.
May I ask your names?
Qin Xiaofeng once again cupped his fists and asked.
My name is Deng Feng, my sister MO Ruyue, and my brother-inw Gu
Ying.
Deng Feng had also obtained MO Ruyues tacit approval before he told them their names.
Thisdy is MO Ruyue? Lady Qin?
Qin Xiaofengs eyes suddenly widened as he looked at MO Ruyue in surprise. Then, a thick doubt surged in his eyes.
Lady Qin should be the widow of a centurion called Qin Ming, right? Why is there another husband?
He sized Gu Ying up, and the kindness that he had initially shown slowly
disappeared.
MO Ruyue naturally knew the meaning behind Qin Xiaofengs gaze. She immediately retorted disdainfully, Im a widow, so I can naturally remarry. Why cant I have a new husband? Do I have to be a widow for him for the rest of my life just because my ex-husband is a centurion?
Women should be chaste. This is a rule of the secr world. Shouldnt everyone abide by it?
Qin Xiaofengs brows knitted into a knot. Clearly, he was a rather old-fashioned person, a old-fashioned person who had been deeply influenced by etiquette.
MO Ruyue sneered and said sarcastically, Did the rites say that when a dead wife is not around, a man should be chaste for her? Why didnt they give men a chastity memorial archway? How many men marry after losing their wives?
What logic is that?
This A man should continue the family line
Before Qin Xiaofeng could finish his sentence, MO Ruyue interrupted him.
Forget it. These words are better left to fool ghosts. Theres no need to tell me. Besides, whether Im willing to be a widow or not is my business, theres no need for Marquis Qin to worry.
At this point, the atmosphere was already very stiff, but Gu Ying added fuel to the fire at this time.
Getting married is a matter of mutual affection between me and Bing Er. If you dont like it, just shut up. No one cares about what you think..
Chapter 445 - 445: I Wish You a Successful Disaster Relief
Chapter 445: I Wish You a Sessful Disaster Relief
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Forget it. This is your private matter. It has nothing to do with me.
Qin Xiaofeng sighed and suppressed the dissatisfaction in his heart.
He had once heard of Lady Qins deeds. Her medical skills were extremely
superb and exquisite. She could even easilyplete many operations that the imperial doctors could not do.
Thest time she treated the soldiers and their families in Ping City, the reward given by The Imperial Court was a test.
The person sitting in the throne room was very interested in the woman in front of him.
Only now did Qin Xiaofeng seriously take a good look at the man and woman in front of him. Regardless of appearance, temperament, or skills, they were simply a match made in heaven.
To put it bluntly, anyone standing next to the two of them would feel ufortable. It was as if the two of them were born for each other. Just thinking about separating the two of them would make them feel guilty.
If someone had offended Marquis Qin in such a manner, they would have been punished long ago. However, Qin Xiaofeng was also subdued by the elegant bearing of the two and began to cherish their talents.
He looked at MO Ruyue and suddenly asked tentatively, Lady Qin, if I want to invite you to apany the disaster relief team to rescue the people, are you willing?
When MO Ruyue heard Qin Xiaofeng expose her identity, she had already guessed what he was going to say next, so she immediately rejected him.
No, Ive been there for more than a month. Its time to find my family. Hearing her say this, Qin Xiaofeng realized that her five babies were not in the carriage.
ording to the information he had gathered, MO Ruyue had Qin Mings five children with her. Although she was not rted to them by blood, she took good care of them.
The babies were not with her now. It was probably because MO Ruyue wanted to go to the disaster relief, but she couldnt let the babies be in danger, so she arranged for them to be in a rtively safe ce.
Thinking about it, she had already been separated from the children for more than a month. It would be a little difficult to forcefully take her away to help with the disaster relief.
Alright, since thats the case, then I wont force you. Have a safe journey, I will bid farewell here.
Qin Xiaofeng cupped his fists at MO Ruyue and Gu Ying and prepared to continue on his journey.
Marquis Qin, please wait.
MO Ruyue suddenly called out to him.
Although I cant go back with you, I have something here that I think you can use when the timees.
She pointed at the trailer behind the carriage. There are some herbs here. We originally wanted to use them on the wounded and sick along the way.
However, our ability is limited. We cant save everyone.
Since Marquis Qin is leading the disaster relief team, there should be quite a number of doctors in the team. These herbs should be of use to them.
Of course. Although The Imperial Court has also raised a lot of herbs, food, and money, Im afraid these things are far from enough for the many people in the south who have been affected by the disaster.
If Lady Qin can donate the herbs in her hands, that would be the best.
Qin Xiaofeng didnt reject MO Ruyues donation just because she didnt donate enough herbs. Instead, he sincerely thanked her after epting it.
I still have some valuables here. I was robbed by a group of bandits on the way here, and then I robbed them. Disaster relief also requires money. Take it as me doing my best for the disaster victims.
MO Ruyue said and nodded at Gu Ying. Thetter quickly pulled out two boxes from the carriage.
To them, wealth was just a number now. If these assets were handed over to the right people, it would help more disaster victims. That would be the most meaningful thing.
This Lady Qin, are you sure you want to donate these too?
Qin Xiaofeng looked at the two chests of gold, silver, jewelry, banknotes, and antiques. With his eyesight, it was very easy for him to roughly estimate a number.
That was definitely a huge amount of wealth, and it could cause many people to fight over it endlessly. But MO Ruyue had donated it so easily?
This isnt my money to begin with. I just snatched it from the bandits. Now that I can use it in a more suitable way, why not?
MO Ruyue saw Qin Xiaofengs confused and shocked expression and shrugged indifferently. Alright, dont look at me like that. Im just offering Buddha a borrowed flower. Marquis Qin, have a safe journey. I wish you a smooth disaster relief.
Alright, then this in will thank Lady Qin for her generosity on behalf of all the people affected by the disaster. Dont worry, this money and herbs will definitely be used in the most suitable and scarce ces.
Qin Xiaofeng didnt say anything more. He just ordered his soldiers to move the two boxes of valuables and the herbs on the cart. Then, he cupped his fists at MO Ruyue and turned to leave with his team.
The three of them only returned to the carriage after the entire disaster relief team had gone far away. However, Deng Feng was the one driving the carriage this time, while MO Ruyue and Gu Ying returned to the carriage.
Bing Er, Ive checked carefully along the way. I heard that the Bai family is heading toward Ping City, but there has been no news of Imperial Doctor Tian.
I think we should find the Bai family first before asking for news of Imperial Doctor Tian.
Gu Ying took out a map. It was a map of the entire country that he had pieced together based on the detailed maps of various ces.
He pointed at a ce on the map. It was very close to the capital.
Yes, I think so too. After all, it was the Bai family who arranged for Imperial Doctor Tian to leave. After the initial chaos, things have gradually settled down. Its time to look for clues about the missing people.
In addition, I also miss Old Master Bai and Bai Shiyuans physical condition very much. Although their conditions had improved when I left, Ill still be more at ease to see them recover with my own eyes.
MO Ruyue treated the Bai family as her friends. That was why she told them about the natural disaster. Now, she was even more concerned about the familys safety.
Then, when will you bring the babies out?
Gu Ying didnt make a sound but mouthed to MO Ruyue.
He also deliberately lowered his voice so that the sound of the carriage could cover his voice, but he still used the safest method.
I think it should be in this city.
MO Ruyue pointed at a city several miles away from them and said, Its rtively safe here. Ill go over early and settle the babies down. Then, Ille back to meet you.
They were moving very slowly now, and they would have to travel dozens of miles until tomorrow. She still had a day to arrange this matter.
After six hours, the carriage stopped again. This time, MO Ruyue suggested to scout the way, while GuYing stayed behind to prepare dinner.
MO Ruyue rode on Big ck and quickly arrived at the ce called Dian City.
This was a medium-sized city. Although it was not hit by meteorites during the natural disaster, the secondary disasters that urred still affected the lives of the people in the city.
There were already many disaster victims who had rushed over to ask for a ce to live. Therefore, the streets of the city were filled with disaster victims who were dressed in ragged clothes and had yellow and emaciated faces.
They gathered in twos and threes under the eaves and at the corners of the walls, leaning against each other to keep warm.
Everyone looked dull and exhausted. It was obvious that such a difficult life of survival had already made them numb..
Chapter 446 - 446: You ‘re All Mother’s Treasures
Chapter 446: You re All Mothers Treasures
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue walked around the city and soon rented a rtively quiet and safe courtyard.
The courtyard was in the wealthy district of the south of the city. Very few disaster victims coulde here. Before they could get close, they would be chased away by the city guards.
She directly stayed in this courtyard for half a month. To thendlord, this was simply an unexpected ie. She immediately signed the contract happily and did not even ask for more details.
After preparing a ce to stay, MO Ruyue immediately took a detour and quietly left the city. Now, she was just short of bringing the babies out and settling them down.
In a small forest outside the city, after MO Ruyue made sure there was no one around, she brought Big ck into the space.
The scene had just changed when she saw a ck panther sandwiched in a pack of giant wolves pouncing toward her.
Hey, your reactions are really fast!
She stood in ce and hugged the head of the giant wolf that rushed in front of her first. She rubbed it affectionately and let go.
The giant wolf did not have a high status in the wolf pack, and the wolf pack was very particr about social status. A low-level wolf like this would not be able to gain MO Ruyues favor, or it would be bullied and ostracized by the high-level wolves.
MO Ruyue was well aware of how wolves interacted with each other, so she changed her target after a simple stroke.
The pack of wolves circled around her and wagged their tails wildly. After being kept in MO Ruyues space for such a long time, the pack of wolves seemed to have the intention of acknowledging her as their master.
Other than the alpha wolf, who was still a little reserved, the other giant wolves werepletely enthusiastic and submissive to her.
MO Ruyue caressed the huge wolves evenly. She had only touched a few of them when the wolf pack was pushed aside by a huge ck figure.
Although the ck panther was alone, not only had its size doubled after the natural disaster, but it was also growing during the time in the space. Its huge size was enough to intimidate the wolf pack.
However, for some reason, after the ck panther entered the space, it did not have any conflict with the wolf pack. They did not use violence to determine their respective positions. Instead, they easily integrated into the space, and their positions were not low.
At this moment, it kept rubbing against MO Ruyues body, pushing aside the other giant wolves who wanted to fight for her favor, as if it wanted to monopolize her.
It was rare to see such a clingy cat. However, MO Ruyue did note back to pet the cat.
She raised her head and looked in the direction of the small courtyard. As expected, a small head poked out from the courtyard door. It looked in her direction and immediately retracted its head.
Cheers rang out as four figures rushed out of the courtyard. Behind them was a person who was walking slowly.
Mother is back!
San Bao was at the front. He was the most powerful of the five babies after Da Baoi and he was also the most impatient of the five.
He ran over happily, like a wild wolf cub. MO Ruyues lips curled up and a smile gradually spread from her lips.
As soon as the babies appeared, both the ck panther and the giant wolf consciously retreated to the side and gave up their position.
The four babies threw themselves into MO Ruyues arms one after another. The three boys still remembered that they were older brothers, so they gave the best seats to Tang Tang.
Mother, are you here to bring us out?
Tang Tang couldnt help but ask as soon as she was carried up. The three boys were also staring at MO Ruyue, their eyes filled with anticipation.
Yes, Ive already found a temporary ce to settle down. Its much safer here.
You can go out and continue north with Mother.
MO Ruyue smoothed Tang Tangs hair and said gently, I know you guys are all suffocating here. Youll be fine after we get out.
Mother, when I get out, I will help you save people. I can also heal people. Tang Tang still remembered the scene at the ruins of the Qin Vige.
The familiar vige had been buried by the mountain rocks, and most of the back mountain had copsed. She didnt know how the vigers were now, but didnt her mothere back here to save people?
She had also learned a lot from her mother and could help her!
Okay, then when we get out, Tang Tang will be Mothers assistant.
MO Ruyue agreed immediately.
Although they were now in a rtively safe ce, many disaster victims had already arrived. There were still many people who needed help.
Mother, we can help too!
I can help with the cooking and the decoction, Si Bao volunteered.
We can do it too!
Er Bao and San Bao said in unison.
Although they werent as talented as their younger sister in medicine and werent as good at cooking as their fourth brother, they usually worked together and cooperated with each other. They had long cultivated a tacit understanding of unity.
Alright, you are all good helpers for Mother. Lees save more people together.
Mo Ruyue knew that the babies were all kind-hearted children, so she naturally wouldnt reject their suggestion.
The further north they went, the less affected they would be by the natural disaster. When they reached the capital, they would consider the childrens academic problems. Before that, she could also temporarily take on the role of Master and let them continue to receive the corresponding education.
Then, will Grandpa and Grandma Liu go out with us? I dont think the wolves and panther can do it.
San Bao did not forget to bring hispanions with him. However, if they followed him out, who knew how many people would be scared?
They will go out with us, but ckie and the others cant. Mother found us a safe ce in the city, so we cant bring them along.
MO Ruyue had originally wanted to find a suitable mountain forest to release the wolves and the ck panther, but after spending so much time together, she felt like she was leaving a group of reliable old friends, and she didnt know when they would meet again.
With that kind of feeling of worry, she seemed to be able to find many ws in every forest she saw along the way, making her feel uneasy and dissatisfied.
In his previous life, there was a forest that stretched for thousands of miles in the northernmost part of China. She wondered if it was the same in the north of this country.
If that was the case, then that was the best ce for this group of old friends.
She decided to wait until everything settled down before heading to the northernmost area. However, it was still too early to think about this matter. It was just the embryonic form of a n.
While they were talking, Da Bao walked over and stood a few steps away from MO Ruyue. He did not stick to her like his siblings.
Da Bao,e, I have something to ask you.
MO Ruyue understood Da Baos personality the best. Although he had always been mature and dull, it was all due to his previous experiences.
The real Da Bao was a very warm-hearted, delicate, and kind child. However, he was too introverted to show his emotions easily.
Therefore, she had to create more opportunities for him so that he could face his true self calmly. At the very least, he would not hide his true emotions in front of his family.
Da Bao took two steps forward and was about to stop to listen to what his mother had to say when someone grabbed his arm and pulled him into a warm embrace.
Alright, now that all of you have been carried by Mother, you are all Mothers treasures. No one can be left behind.
MO Ruyues gentle voice was right beside his ear. Da Bao had wanted to struggle away awkwardly, but his movements slowed down..
Chapter 447 - 447: Stepfather
Chapter 447: Stepfather
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Da Bao did not show any intention of refusing, so MO Ruyue kept hugging him.
She wanted this awkward doll to get used to being intimate with people. She wanted him to get used to being involved, not being far away.
They waited and watched from afar.
After letting MO Ruyue hug him for a while, Da Bao leaned back slightly, indicating that he wanted to leave.
MO Ruyue also released her grip at the right time, allowing him to break free from her embrace.
This was a step-by-step process. He had already improved a lot, so he should still be given time and space to adapt.
Ahem, shall we go back and pack our things now and prepare to leave?
Da Bao clenched his right hand into a fist and covered his mouth with a cough. He tried his best to look calm, but his reddened ears and slightly evasive gaze revealed his true emotions.
MO Ruyue looked at her eldest sons adorable appearance and her fingers began to itch again. She wished she could pinch his cheeks hard.
In the past, Da Baos skin was dark and rough. Although MO Ruyues diet had made his skin fairer and smoother, it still could notpare to Tang Tangs delicate skin.
However, it felt much morefortablepared to when she pinched it before.
Da Bao felt even more uneasy under MO Ruyues gaze. He finally couldnt help but re at her, just like when he had not let down his guard against her in the beginning but was often teased.
MO Ruyue chuckled. She knew that he was about to get angry, so she stopped teasing him and said to the babies, Everyone, go back and bring your textbooks with you. Pack a few more sets of clothes and well be ready to go out now.
Oh, oh, lets go out! Lets go out!
The babies immediately cheered excitedly, causing the wolves to howl at the sky as well. They jumped around them happily, but they were careful not to knock them down.
As for the ck panther, it was lying at MO Ruyues feet,zily wagging its tail.
It seemed to have forgotten the feeling of galloping freely in the forest. It only wanted to lie on the ground, eat, sleep, and eat. It was more like a domesticated cat than a ferocious beast.
The babies swarmed toward the small courtyard. They were in a hurry to pack their textbooks and clothes. They could not wait to go out.
In this strange space, although there was the freshest air, the most beautiful scenery, safety, and quietness, there was no need to worry about anything.
They even had a group of coolest ymates to apany them, but there was still a lingering sense of loneliness.
Humans were social animals. Not everyone could live alone and hide from the world.
MO Ruyue walked slowly behind.
She was going to bring the carriage out of the spaceter. Although she could control everything in the space with a thought and did not need to walk close to operate it, it would easily create a sense of distance, which she did not like.
Mr. and Mrs. Liu had already heard the news from the babies that they were going out, but they were a little lonely in their hearts.
For them, who had already lived more than half of their lives, being able to live in peace was the most important thing. This strange space might be the most suitable ce for them.
However, the two elders didnt show their true feelings. Now, they were more like family to MO Ruyues family. As long as they could be together, they would be content.
Soon, the babies came out with their packed backpacks and got into the carriage one by one. The Liu couple habitually prepared to lock the door.
Aunt Liu, theres no need to lock this door. No one else is here? MO Ruyue reminded with a smile.
Oh right, look at my memory. There are no outsiders here.
Aunt Liu also smiled a little embarrassedly. She was a little absent-minded just now and subconsciously made a move to lock the door.
We still have a chance toe back in the future. Every year when the children are on vacation, welle in and stay for a while. How about that?
MO Ruyue saw through Aunt Lius unspoken thoughts at a nce. Anyway, the space belonged to her and she carried it with her. She could easily bring them in with a thought.
Good. Of course its good.
Aunt Liu nodded repeatedly.
She didnt have any extravagant hopes. All she wanted was to get along well with MO Ruyues family and her life would beplete.
Oh, right, theres something very important that I forgot to mention.
Just as MO Ruyue was about to move the carriage out of the space, she suddenly remembered something. She immediately said to the babies and Mrs. Liu, Theres going to be one more person in our family.
Mother, who do we need?
San Bao said.
When Mother was saving people outside, she met a rather good person. You should call him uncle. He was willing to risk his life to save a group of people who had nothing to do with him. Moreover, he was an extremely capable person.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying both had a very high opinion of Deng Feng. Otherwise, they would not have wanted to bring him along.
She also hoped that Deng Feng would be epted by the babies. Their second uncle, who was really rted by blood, was a scumbag. She really wanted the babies to experience what true kinship was like.
Mother, you want to find us a stepfather?
San Bao spoke without restraint, but before he could finish his sentence, Er Bao pped him on the back of his head.
What nonsense are you talking about? If you want to find us a stepfather, its someone like Uncle Ying.
Before he could finish his sentence, Da Bao pped him on the back of his head, just like his third brother.
What nonsense are you talking about? Dont you know that this will hurt mothers reputation? If you spout any more nonsense, dont me me for beating you up!
Although Da Bao sounded very protective of his son, MO Ruyue could still tell that he was protective of his biological father and repelled all men except his biological father.
Of course, he was absolutely protective of her. He would spare no effort to protect her innocence and reputation. However, he also had his own selfish motives, which could not be hidden from MO Ruyues eyes.
That uncle is the elder brother that Mother has acknowledged. In the future, we will also get along like a family, so Mother hopes that you can know about this before you see him.
His name is Deng Feng. You can just call him Uncle Deng. Theres one more
MO Ruyue hesitated for a moment. She did not know if it was the right time, but seeing Da Baos rejection, she felt that it was better to take precautions as soon as possible.
I said before that I would dissolve the marriage with your biological father. If it werent for the natural disaster, it would have beenpleted by now.
Once the rtionship is broken, I will regain my freedom and can choose to remarry. Therefore, you will definitely have a stepfather in the future. I hope that you can ept this and not be stubborn.
Her words were directed at the babies, but her eyes lingered on Da Bao. She could clearly see that his face had darkened.
Mother, could Uncle Ying be our stepfather?
San Bao didnt notice anything wrong with his elder brothers expression. His mind was filled with what Er Bao had just said.
Uncle Ying looked too much like his biological father, and he was also a highly skilled expert. Although he looked cold, he did not put on airs when he was with them. Instead, he took care of them very well.
If he could really be their stepfather, he could also treat them well like his own father right?
Therefore, he said what he was thinking truthfully.
No matter what others thought, he did not reject this possibility at all..
Chapter 448 - 448: Hope Mother Can Be Happy
Chapter 448: Hope Mother Can Be Happy
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
What does San Bao think of Uncle Ying?
MO Ruyue didnt answer him directly. Instead, she asked him a question.
I think its pretty good. I have nothing to say to Mother. When I was with you, I never looked at anyone else. She is serious about everything she teaches, but she is a little too strict. She is even more unreasonable than Mother.
San Bao spoke non-stop. It seemed that he was quite satisfied with Gu Ying.
Then what do the others think?
She looked at the other babies again and took the opportunity to test everyones abilities.
Uncle Ying is very good. He cares a lot about Tang Tang.
Tang Tang had never met her father, Qin Ming, so she had no impression of him.
She had only secretly fantasized in her heart that if her biological father was still around, he would love her more. And in the process of getting along with them, Gu Yingpletely matched all of the little girls imaginations.
I think its alright too. Its just that its good for Mother. I have no objections.
Si Bao was more like a little adult. His orderly manner made peopleugh.
No one knew what Er Bao was thinking. His eyes were a little nk. He didnt even react when it was his turn to speak. He only came back to his senses after San Bao elbowed him.
What? Oh, I, I dont know.
Er Bao scratched his head, but his words stunned everyone.
Second brother, you just said that if mother found a stepfather for us, it should be someone like Uncle Ying. Why are you saying that you dont know now?
San Bao didnt hesitate to ruin his reputation and expose the words that were still hot.
Thats right Anyway, its up to Mother. Its better for us children not to get involved in adults matters.
Er Bao kept ncing at Da Bao as he spoke.
He had already realized that his eldest brother was very angry about this topic.
As for why, perhaps it was because they all had very deep memories of their biological father. When they thought that someone would rece his position, they felt that it was uneptable.
However, he did not find it difficult to ept this matter. After all, Uncle Ying looked too much like his biological father. He was also really obedient to his mother. He could not be any better.
They both hoped that their mother could be happy, that was all.
It was just that his eldest brother had spent the longest time with his biological father and had the deepest feelings for him. It was normal that he could not turn this corner until now. Perhaps it would be fine if he did not answer his third brothers words just now.
Big Brother
San Bao looked at Da Bao and was about to urge him to answer the question. However, after seeing his expression, he automatically silenced the rest of his words.
Mother can do whatever she wants. I have no objections.
Da Bao said lightly and turned to look out of the carriage window, refusing to make eye contact with anyone else.
MO Ruyue took a look and realized that the knot in his heart had yet to be resolved.
Qin Ming was the hero in Da Baos heart. He was an indomitable and irreceable man. Compared to the other babies, his heart was the hardest to break.
It took her a lot of effort to get rid of Da Baos guard. Now, it was even more difficult for Gu Ying to rece the man who was almost a legend to Da Bao.
Alright, lets leave this ce first. After I settle you down, I still have to meet up with your Uncle Ying and Uncle Deng.
MO Ruyue did not intend to discuss this matter with Da Bao in front of the others. She would find a suitable time to talk about it in private.
She and Gu Ying had lived two lives and were already an inseparable part of each other. It was only natural that they would get married. Even if Da Bao could not ept it, he could not change her decision.
Seeing that everyone was seated in the carriage, MO Ruyue prepared a batch of food and herbs to be used as a temporary supply. She then closed the carriage door and windows.
The carriage swayed slightly. Before the babies could react, MO Ruyue said from outside, Alright,e out.
The carriage door and windows opened almost at the same time.
San Bao and Er Bao sat by the door and were the first to jump off the carriage.
The two of them stretched their bodies and took a few deep breaths. Their brows slowly furrowed.
Mother, why does the air outside feel so suffocating?
Tang Tang was also leaning against the window, her small hands fanning her nose and mouth a few times. Yeah, the air over there smells better. Its a little cool and sweet, like a mixture of mint and lc.
Its a little choking here. Theres a sudden earthy smell.
This is because youve been there for a long time, so you wont be able to adapt when you firste out. Youll get used to it slowly.
MO Ruyues space was filled with rich spiritual energy. The longer one stayed inside, the more they could not stand the turbid air outside.
This was also the reason why she was in a hurry to bring the babies out. She was afraid that their physiques would not be able to adapt to the external environment early.
Mr. and Mrs. Liu were already very old. Before the spiritual energy could improve their physique, it had to repair their bodies that were gradually exhausted. Therefore, the feeling when they returned to the outside world was not as strong as the babies.
This is the address and key of the house I rented in the city. After I bring you into the city, release the ck Wolf King and ckie, and let two giant wolves guard the house.
Im worried that youll attract attention if you bring these supplies with you.
With these, I can rest assured. After tonight, Ill be able to meet up with you guys tomorrow.
After MO Ruyue finished speaking, she asked Uncle Liu to drive the carriage into the city.
At the city gate, they were indeed stopped by the soldiers guarding the city gate for a routine interrogation.
Little Brother, there are old people and children in the carriage. Its been a long journey and they cant take it anymore. Please make it convenient for them.
As MO Ruyue spoke, she used her body as a cover and stuffed a few silver notes into the soldiers hands.
The bank that epted the money was thergest bank in the country and had several branches in this city.
The soldier lowered his head and twirled the banknote. When he saw the amount on it, he immediately beamed with joy.
He pushed open the carriage door and looked at the babies and Mrs. Liu sitting inside. He nodded and waved his hand. Alright, if theres nothing else, go in!
The group entered the city smoothly and headed straight for the courtyard that MO Ruyue had prepared.
After entering the door, she first released the two hounds and three giant wolves and ced them in the most vulnerable ces.
After that, she moved the food and herbs into the warehouse with the babies.
She looked up at the sky. It had been about two hours since she came out. It was time to go back.
Alright, I have to go back now. Ive wasted a lot of time. You guys can clean up the rest yourselves.
Mother, you cane to the city tomorrow, right? Then well wait for you! San Bao stood beside MO Ruyue and said reluctantly.
After they came out, the novelty quickly passed. Now, what they wanted the most was for their mother to be by their side and live a peaceful and stable life like before..
Chapter 449 - 449: Gluttonous Worm
Chapter 449: Gluttonous Worm
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Yes, Ill speed up when I get back. Well meet again before noon tomorrow at thetest.
MO Ruyue was also reluctant to part with the babies.
They had stayed in her space for so long. They were clearly the closest to each other, but they barely had time to see each other. In fact, they had not even seen each other as much as before the natural disaster.
It would be a lie to say that she didnt feel guilty.
She wanted to do her best to make it up to them.
Ruyue, lets go. Its too tiring for you toe and go in such a hurry. If you have anything to say, wait until we meet tomorrow.
Aunt Liu saw the babies sticking to MO Ruyue and chatting away. She knew that she would not be able to leave if they continued to dy.
Soon, MO Ruyue left the courtyard.
However, she did not ride a horse this time. Instead, she silently climbed over the city wall alone and left on her horse after leaving a certain distance.
On the other side, Gu Ying and Deng Feng stayed where they were and waited for MO Ruyue to return. They also prepared the ingredients for dinner.
It was gettingte, and he didnt know what was going on ahead. Perhaps he would have to camp here tonight.
Brother-inw, Ill bring the horses nearby to look for some grass. We have food and drink, but the horses cant stop eating.
Deng Feng dismounted the horse that was pulling the carriage. He could only get close to Gu Yings Little ck and MO Ruyues Big ck, but he could not bring them away.
The way he addressed Gu Ying was bing more and more fluent. It was only after he finished speaking that he realized what he had just called him.
Alright, Brother Feng, you go first. Ill watch the fire here and wait for Bing
Er toe back.
Gu Ying naturally responded to his words. He stood up and walked to Little cks side, patting its neck.
Little ck, follow Brother Deng. Dont throw a tantrum.
With his words, Little ck nodded repeatedly and took the initiative to walk to Deng Fengs side and rub its head against him.
Alright, Ill be leaving first. You guys can eat first when Ruyuees back. Dont wait for me.
Not long after Deng Feng left with a few horses, MO Ruyue came back riding on Big ck. She couldnt see Deng Feng at first nce, so she asked casually, Ying, wheres Brother Feng?
He just left. He left not long ago. You came back right after he left.
Gu Ying walked over and held MO Ruyues hand as they sat down by the fire.
Ill get Big ck to follow. It can follow Little cks scent and tell Brother Feng that Im back.
MO Ruyue whistled. The big ck horse immediately raised its head and galloped away with a neigh.
How is it? Have you settled down over there?
Gu Ying saw her calm expression and knew that there should be no problem.
Yes, theres a medium-sized city a few dozen miles ahead. I rented a courtyard in the city and arranged for the babies, Uncle Liu, and Aunt Liu to stay there.
Tomorrow, we will speed up and try to enter the city before noon. Ive prepared some food and herbs. Im afraid it will attract attention if its too long.
Although MO Ruyue had already made some arrangements before she left, she was still worried.
Having wolves and dogs at home could more or less deter them. The babies had also practiced some self-defense skills, but it was still very risky to really encounter robbers.
Dont worry, they were trained by you, Bing Er. Although it hasnt been long, their skills in setting up ambushes and traps are very high. They will definitely be able to protect themselves.
Gu Ying was much more confident in the babies than MO Ruyue.
Because she was too worried and put in too much effort, she often worried about her gains and losses and could not see the real situation clearly.
Yes, I believe in your judgment. If you say there would not be any problems, then there would really be no problems.
MO Ruyue finally felt a little relieved after beingforted.
She took over the task of preparing dinner. She would be meeting the babies tomorrow. To celebrate, she specially prepared a few more dishes and even took out a small pot of white wine.
Deng Feng returned after an hour.
The evening sky rose, and the deste official road was deserted. Only the bright and warm bonfire guided him back.
The rich aroma of food filled the air. Even though Deng Feng was dozens of meters away, he was still tempted. He listened to the rumbling sound, touched his stomach, andughed at himself.
Im already used to it. Ill definitely scream when I smell the fragrance!
He had been with MO Ruyue for a long time, and only then did he realize that her culinary skills were not any worse than her medical skills.
When they were in the survivor camp, everyone ate together. As long as there was food, it was good enough. They couldnt pick the taste.
MO Ruyue was even busier every day. She was busy treating the wounded, helping to find a ce to stay, plowing the fields and plowing the spring. She had no chance to cook at all.
The survivors were even more unwilling to let MO Ruyue cook for them while working. They took the initiative to do these chores.
In the end, no one knew what kind of treasure they had missed.
Deng Feng was also deeply shocked after he tasted MO Ruyues barbecue on his first night outside after leaving the survivor camp.
Brother Feng, youre back! Come over and wipe your hands. Its time to eat!
MO Ruyues voice could be heard in the night breeze, which made Deng Feng quicken his pace. As he led the horse back, he replied loudly, Hey, Iming!
When he saw Big ck running over, he knew that MO Ruyue had returned. She had sent Big ck over to graze, and was also sending him a message.
Fortunately, they found a patch of grass after walking for a short while. There were specks of green on the grass. It was the tender grass that horses loved to eat the most.
The weather in the north was rtively cold, but spring had arrived. The degree of disaster here was getting lighter, and even the animals and nts had increased.
Deng Feng had only taken a few steps when he heard a mournful wolf howl behind him.
Deng Feng turned around warily and stared at the darkness behind him. As expected, he saw a dim light.
The horses that were originally following behind had long been used to the existence of the giant wolves and had be less afraid of the existence of the wolves.
Although they smelled another unfamiliar wolf scent, they only stirred slightly. Soon, they gathered around Deng Feng and calmed down again. Brother Feng, leave this to me. You go eat with Bing Er.
Gu Ying silentlynded beside Deng Feng. The distance of tens of meters was just a few ups and downs for him.
Okay, you take care of yourself too. Ill go first.
Deng Feng knew that Gu Ying was very capable and unpredictable. Not only would he not be of any help if he stayed here, but he would also be a burden to him. He immediately turned around and left.
Deng Feng had taken the horses away, leaving Gu Ying alone.
A few of the dim lights in the distance dimmed and gradually moved away from the two sides, as if they were going to surround Deng Feng. The person facing Gu Ying was staring at him, trying to restrict his movements..
Chapter 450 - 450: A Tame Little Sheep
Chapter 450: A Tame Little Sheep
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
What a beast. You even know how to y tactics.
Gu Ying scolded with a smile.
He did not have any killing intent towards this pack of wolves that had suddenly appeared, but that did not mean that he would allow them to treat the three of them and the horses as prey.
Perhaps because Gu Ying had been with the giant wolf pack for a long time, he had a wolf smell on him. Even if he did not release his killing intent, the wolf pack on the opposite side still did not dare to act rashly.
Gu Ying, let me do it.
The sleeves of her clothes fluttered in the wind, and a faint fragrance wafted in the air. MO Ruyue, who was supposed to be having dinner by the bonfire, had alreadynded beside him, holding a huge pig leg in her hand.
Its just a bunch of hungry wolves. Just feed them and send them away.
She turned her head and pointed in the direction of the bonfire. In a dark corner where the fire could not shine, a few hungry wolves were crazily biting a wild boar.
Its just a temporary solution.
Gu Ying frowned.
It was also because of the giant wolves that he did not want to kill these wolves that went out to hunt for food.
But even if the wolves were fed today, they would still hunt humans and their livestock when they were hungry next time.
This wasnt helping them, but harming them instead.
After taking some lives, they would also attract a fatal disaster. They would definitely be wiped out by the government or the nearby people.
After the natural disaster, the wild animals in the forest either died or ran away. The wolves that originally lived in the mountains had no choice but to take the risk ande to human territory to look for food.
If we cant subdue them like how we subdued the giant wolves, in fact, their final oue has already been determined. All we can do now is to let them eat an extra meal.
MO Ruyue said as she threw the pork leg in her hand.
She and Gu Ying took the opportunity to take turns to explore the way. They would not return empty-handed every time. In fact, they were just taking out the prey raised in the space.
Therefore, they had umted a certain amount of meat in the carriage. In addition to providing food for themselves every day, if they met a small number of disaster victims on the road, they would also generously provide them with a sumptuous meal.
The meat that MO Ruyue was distributing to the wolves was the frozen meat that she had taken out from the interspace. She would only feed the wolves with the meat from the interspace when she was far away from Deng Fengs line of sight.
Then why dont we kill them on the spot? Otherwise, if someone passes by this ce and encounters a wolf pack in the future, wont they die an innocent death?
Gu Ying did not understand MO Ruyues intention for a moment. However, when he saw MO Ruyue directly rushing forward to drive the wolf pack into the dark forest, he seemed to understand what she wanted to do.
Several ck shadows appeared beside her and followed her closely into the forest.
Gu Ying smiled and did not follow. Instead, he turned around and walked towards the bonfire.
Deng Feng sat by the fire, holding a torch and a sharp machete in his hand. He stared warily at the wolves that were biting the wild boar not far away.
After MO Ruyue threw the dead wild boar over, she went straight to Gu Ying.
Deng Fengs eyesight wasnt that strong, so he couldnt see anything more than ten meters away. He could only wait in ce ording to her instructions.
Suddenly, he noticed that the wolves had suddenly raised their heads and looked in the direction of MO Ruyue and the other two. They then dragged the wild boar that had barely eaten a few mouthfuls and dragged it with all their might. Soon, they disappeared into the night.
He didnt know what was going on over there, but he thought that it might be a trick by the wolves to lure him out of the range of the fire, so he forcefully suppressed the thought of going to find out what was going on. He just stayed by the bonfire and remained vignt.
Soon, a series of light footsteps could be heard. Gu Ying walked out of the darkness alone, but MO Ruyue was nowhere to be seen.
Brother-inw, wheres Ruyue?
Deng Feng looked behind him. Gu Ying was so relieved that she could face the pack of wolves alone, but as his righteous brother, he could not help but worry about her safety.
Bing Er has gone to solve the wolf problem. Brother Deng, she wants us to continue eating. Shell be back soon.
GuYing returned to the campfire and sat down. He picked up his bowl and continued to eat.
Deng Feng saw that he was calm andposed, and his anxious heart slowly rxed.
His younger sister and brother-inw were like immortals, so he really didnt have to worry so much.
On the other side, MO Ruyue rushed straight into the wolf pack and snatched the food from the wolfs mouth with lightning speed. In the blink of an eye, she had rushed dozens of meters away.
She heard the sound of rapid footsteps behind her, the angry howls of the wolves, and the rapid panting of the running.
When the wild wolves caught up, she had already released the giant wolves in her space.
At this moment, she had already entered deep into the forest and was very far from the official road outside. The moment the giant wolf pack appeared, the unfamiliar and violent aura, as well as the huge, oppressive and threatening body size, immediately caused the wild wolf pack to explode.
The wolf pack that had been chasing MO Ruyue with their ws bared instantly had their ears stuck to the ground, their tails tightly tucked between their hind legs, and their four limbs bent down, their belly pressed tightly against the ground.
The air was filled with the strong smell of wolves.
When the giant wolves surrounded them, all the wild wolves, including the alpha wolf, fell on their stomachs and dripped urine.
Despite MO Ruyues strong endurance, she sneezed a few times due to the pungent smell.
The ck wolf king had been in the space, preparing tomand the wolf pack to hunt, but it was transferred to the space outside in the next second. Although it did not understand what was going on, it still subconsciously obeyed MO Ruyues instructions.
Gather, deter, subdue.
The three clear instructions were passed down, and the effect was obviously gratifying.
When the ferocious and cunning wolf pack encountered the giant wolf pack, they immediately turned into docile littlembs. One by one, they turned their soft bellies out and showed them, not even daring to have the thought of resisting.
In thews of the wolf pack, the hierarchy was much stricter than the hierarchy maintained by humanws.
If a wolf with a lower status wanted to challenge someone of a higher level, the only oue for losing was death.
Every wolf in the pack had a clear understanding that even the weakest wolf in the pack that appeared out of thin air was stronger than their wolf king.
In the face of absolute power, resistance was meaningless.
The ck wolf king stood proudly. It had no interest in ughtering these weak wolves. It was only following MO Ruyues orders.
Therefore, after intimidating the pack of wild wolves with its aura, it slightly wagged its tail at MO Ruyue, rubbed its tail against her legs, and circled around her twice. This was also a clear indication of her status to the pack of wild wolves.
MO Ruyue patted the ck wolf kings neck. Indeed, it was great to have such a helper.
This time, the wild wolves no longer looked at MO Ruyue with caution and vignce. Instead, they looked at her with subservience and ttery.
These prey are for you. I will also release enough prey in this forest for you to survive. The condition is that you must stay away from human tracks in the future and not hurt passersby.
MO Ruyue told them her true intentions, so she didnt have to worry that the wild wolves wouldnt understand her..
Chapter 451 - 451: The Laws of Nature
Chapter 451: The Laws of Nature
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The ck wolf king kept growling at the wolf pack, trying to trante her words to the wolf pack.
It could understand a lot of MO Ruyues words, especially after staying in her space for a while. Other than not being able to speak, it could almost perfectly understand every word MO Ruyue said.
There was a briefmotion among the wild wolves. Their eyes revealed a surprised and rxed expression, and there was also a little doubt.
If it werent for the fact that there werent enough prey in the forest, why would they take the risk toe down the mountain to attack humans? However, was what that woman said true?
Could she really provide enough prey for them to survive?
If that was the case, they would be eager to hide in the mountains and nevere out again.
MO Ruyue did not need the ck wolf king to trante for her to see through the wild wolves thoughts from their eyes.
It was also because she had an extremely powerful space. Otherwise, there was no other way to save the pack of wild wolves in front of her other than beingpletely killed.
Before a natural disaster struck, only the nts in MO Ruyues space would show signs of rapid growth and reproduction. The growth cycle of animals was no different from the outside world.
Later, before the natural disaster, in order to maintain the survival needs of the giant wolf pack, she and Gu Ying captured arge number of herbivores and put them into the space.
Originally, she was worried that it would not be enough for the giant wolves to eat a few meals. She did not expect that the number of herbivores did not decrease, but instead increased.
It was only then that she realized that the space had such an obvious effect on the breeding cycle of animals.
This was a pleasant surprise, but it was also a worry.
She was happy that if she could capture rare species like rollie and the snow leopard in the future, she would be able to reproduce in her space and avoid them from bing endangered species.
The worrying thing was that humans were also a type of mammal. If they stayed in the space for too long, they would also be affected and some unexpected physiological changes would ur.
She temporarily put this question aside.
Unless a natural disaster of this scale urred again, or the babies became her weakness and were threatened, she would not let the babies stay in the space for too long unless it was absolutely necessary.
Due to the dark sky, MO Ruyue was unable to observe the surrounding terrain in detail. She could only form a 3D topographic map in her mind based on the path she had taken.
Judging from the topographic map, this ce was far enough from the official road outside. As long as the herbivores were released and the wolves grazed into the mountains, it would be fine.
Thats right, dogs evolved from wolves in ancient times. Wolves would hunt together, so grazing together was equivalent to surrounding them without killing them. It was not difficult for them.
The ck wolf king once again conveyed MO Ruyues intentions. There was also a wolf king among the pack of wild wolves. It crouched at the ck wolf kings feet and whimpered in a low voice, as if it understood.
Soon, batches of deer, wild goats, yellow goats, and pheasants were released into the forest. There were also wild rabbits and pheasants.
Except for a few clever ones who were at the edge of the pack and quickly escaped without a trace as soon as theynded, the rest were all frightened by the wolf packs aura. They trembled in fear and did not dare to escape at all.
Alright, Ive already prepared your food. If I find out that youre still going out to harm human lives, dont say that Ill cut the weeds and eradicate them at their roots. Ill be ruthless.
MO Ruyue had done everything she could. Although releasing herbivores to be food for the wolves sounded cruel, it was thew of nature.
A natural disaster had broken the ecosystem in the southern mountains. She hoped that her current actions could make up for it, so that her efforts would not be in vain.
After confirming that the wild wolves hadpletely taken control of the herbivores, MO Ruyue recalled the giant wolf pack back into her space Then, she turned around and quickly ran down the mountain to the campsite.
From the time she entered the forest to the time she returned, it had only been less than an hour.
There was an iron pot on the fire, and meat soup was still boiling inside. Gu Ying turned around and saw that she had returned, so he took the initiative to scoop the food and soup and handed them over with chopsticks.
Bing Er, youve worked hard. Hurry up and eat.
Gu Ying might look cold and aloof, but to MO Ruyue, he was definitely a filial man.
Putting aside the fact that taking care of her meant that he had to provide her with food and clothes, even if she frowned slightly, he would urately determine if she was sad, angry, or needed something.
MO Ruyue took the bowl and chopsticks and smiled sweetly at Gu Ying.
Before she started to eat, she hooked Gu Yings finger with her finger and shook it gently. The corners of her eyes and eyebrows were so sweet that honey was about to drip out.
Deng Feng rubbed his nose and consciously went to gather the herd of horses and prepare for the nights sleep.
Seeing the sweet couple, he felt very happy.
Although his adopted sister was still a widow, a widow could remarry. As long as she could be happy, he, as her elder brother, would definitely support her to the end.
The night passed by quietly. Before the sun rose in the east, the three of them got up and extinguished the fire. After ensuring that there were no embers, they set off for the next scheduled town.
Their speed today was much faster than yesterday. When MO Ruyue returnedst night, she had mentioned that there would be a medium-sized city in a few dozen miles. They could go and resupply.
Deng Fengs body hadpletely recovered. This time, he insisted that he drive the carriage every day.
The main thing was that there was no room for a third person between MO Ruyue and Gu Ying. No matter who he was with in the carriage, he would feel ufortable all over, as if he was a wicked father who was trying to break up the lovebirds.
After he could not help but tell MO Ruyue his true feelings, sheughed until tears flowed out. In the end, she readily agreed to his request.
Sister, are the babies in the city too? Did Uncle Liu leave any clues for you?
Deng Feng sat on the shaft of the carriage and asked MO Ruyue as he steered the carriage forward steadily and quickly.
Uncle Liu doesnt know any code words. Even if he left some clues, he cant be sure that Im going the same way as them. We can only go to the city to look for it first.
However, before we left, we agreed to take the route to the capital and choose a rtivelyrge city to stay in. We tried our best to avoid sleeping in the wilderness, so I think we should be able to find out about them in the next
Of course, MO Ruyue could not say that she had already arranged everything. She could only give Deng Feng a logical answer.
Yes, it was not easy for my sister to make this decision. Ive seen your babies before. Theyre all smart and beautiful, with a sense of wit. Theyll definitely be dragons and phoenixes in the future.
Deng Feng had seen the five babies when MO Ruyue was in awsuit against her mother-inw.
At that time, Qin Qingyan had brought his four younger siblings and begged Uncle Liu to bring them to testify for MO Ruyue.
He had watched the entirewsuit and had a deep impression of the five babies performance..
Chapter 452 - 452: A Great Crisis
Chapter 452: A Great Crisis
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Yes, weve been apart for so long. I miss them too. Perhaps theyre really waiting for me in the next city.
Although she had just seen the babies yesterday and spent quite some time with them, MO Ruyue was telling the truth when she said that she missed them.
This time, after everyone reunited, they would always be together. As for when they couldpletely settle down, that would have to wait until they reached the capital.
While MO Ruyue was hurrying toward her destination, the Bai Family was facing an unprecedented crisis.
In a secluded courtyard, Bai Shiyuan frowned as he read the letter in his hand. He got up and paced back and forth in the room.
Why did this matter leak out? Didnt the informant at that time already arrange it and send it far away?
After walking back and forth a few times, his emotions eased slightly before he asked the messenger.
Young Master, the higher-ups have never stopped investigating our Bai family. Back then, the head of the family gave up half of his family business in exchange for decades of low-key endurance.
After this natural disaster, the higher-ups are worried that our Bai family will take the opportunity to make aeback. Therefore, under the guise of disaster relief, they are actually taking advantage of the situation to uproot many of the shops that we have been operating for a long time.
I didnt expect that there would be a descendant of someone who knew the truth inside. He confessed everything he knew without even using torture.
Does Father know about this?
Bai Shiyuan asked.
After Master Bai got better, he lived in seclusion in a small city in order tomand the remaining forces of the Bai family.
Under Bai Shiyuans lead, the Bai family headed north to a safer ce Once they found a suitable ce, they would once again hide in seclusion.
This was the original n, but before Bai Shiyuan could find a suitable ce, something happened.
The family head has also received the news. He has also sent a message to the young master. He wants you to immediately move your family again. If it really doesnt work, you can only enter the mountains.
Bai Shiyuans heart sank when he heard the messengers words.
It seemed that the current situation was quite serious. Otherwise, his father would not have said that he wanted the Bai family to enter the mountain.
They had a secret base hidden in a mountain in the north, but there were still hundreds of miles to go. There were many checkpoints along the way, and it would be very difficult to get through.
During the journey north, the Bai family and the Xiao family lost contact. If it was said that in the days after the natural disaster, everything was chaotic and they had not been able to contact each other, it would be fine. However, it had been more than a month since the disaster, and they had not been able to contact each other. This was simply too strange.
One had to know that the Xiao family specialized in intelligence. If such a professional person could not find the whereabouts of the Bai family, how could it be possible?
Send a message back to my father. Tell him that I understand and will leave for the north on the same day. Tell him not to worry.
After Bai Shiyuan sent the messenger away, he was the only one left in the room, sitting quietly.
The Bai family had never had the intention of rebelling. However, they were helpless. Just the wealth and reputation they had umted over hundreds of years was enough to make any emperor wary.
In order to protect the Bai familys bloodline, the ancestors exhausted all their efforts and left bases in various parts of the country for emergency evacuation.
It was just that most of the southern ones should have been destroyed in this natural disaster, but the northern ones were too close to the capital, the center of power, and did not dare to expand at all.
But now, The Imperial Court had captured the descendant of the most important insider. To the Bai family, this was equivalent to another catastrophe.
If the Bai family cant survive this cmity, then many promises to Lady Qin cant be fulfilled.
Bai Shiyuan muttered to himself.
He didnt know why he thought of MO Ruyue at this moment.
She had saved almost all of the Bai familys people. This kindness was greater than the heavens. It was not something that could be repaid with a lot of wealth.
The Bai Family had made a solemn promise to her. As long as she was alive, the Bai Family would always help MO Ruyues family with all their might.
No matter what price they had to pay, as long as the Bai family was still breathing, this promise would continue.
However, no one had expected that the Bai Familys cmity had already arrived before MO Ruyues familys troubles.
Just as Bai Shiyuan was racking his brains on how to safely and secretly bring the Bai family members through the blockade line of hundreds of miles to the nearest fortress in the north, there was suddenly a knock on the door.
Husband, may Ie in?
Mrs. Bais voice came from outside the door.
Bai Shiyuan raised his head and realized that the suns shadow outside the window had already shifted. Just as he was deep in thought, time had already slipped away.
With Bai Shiyuans permission, the door was slowly pushed open.
A beautiful and gentle woman walked in with a tray. Although there was a hint of worry in her eyes, she quickly changed into a gentle smile when she entered.
Shiyuan, I heard that you didnt eat lunch. Is your wound hurting again? I made you some easy to digest porridge. Have some.
As she spoke, she ced the dishes on the table.
The wound doesnt hurt anymore. Wifey, dont worry. Im not hungry now. Lets eat together during dinner.
Bai Shiyuans mind was filled with the crisis that the Bai family was facing now. How could he be in the mood to eat anything?
Then, Ill put the food here first. Remember to eat it while its hot.
The beautiful woman wanted to persuade him again, but she swallowed her words hesitantly.
She did not know what trouble her husband had encountered that made him so worried. Thest time she saw him like this was when her mother-inw and sister-inw were both in danger.
Could it be that the Bai family had encountered another huge crisis?
She thought to herself, but she couldnt ask this question. He didnt say it because he didnt want her to worry.
Okay, Wifey, go and see if Mother and Younger Sister need any help. I still have some things to deal with, so I wont apany you for now.
Bai Shiyuan thought of the letter hidden in his bosom, and his heart suddenly felt heavy. He could only force out a smile.
The beautiful woman nodded. She knew that even if she stayed here, she would not be of much help, but she still walked over and ced her hand on his shoulder, massaging his acupuncture points a few times.
Husband, Father is not at home now. You are our backbone. But no matter what happens, dont keep it in your heart. I can share your worries.
Yes, Wifey, Im sorry for making you worry.
Bai Shiyuan closed his eyes slightly, allowing himself to indulge in his wifes massage for a while. Then, he opened his eyes and patted the back of her hand twice.
After the beautiful woman left, Bai Shiyuan looked at the steaming porridge and side dishes on the table. Finally, he picked up the spoon and started eating in small bites.
She was right. Her father was also busy at the moment. Even if it was for his wife and children, he had to shoulder this burden.
The Bai family could not fall here like this. Then, even if he went to the underworld, he would not have the face to face his ancestors.
Only after eating, having strength and a clear mind could one deal with all kinds of unexpected situations and make the most correct choice..
Chapter 453 - 453: Accepting the Examination
Chapter 453: epting the Examination
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
I dont know where Lady Qin is now. She entrusted the Bai family to take care of Imperial Doctor Tian and Mr. Du. At least we didnt disappoint her previously, but after this disaster I wonder what it will be like.
Bai Shiyuan muttered to himself.
He didnt know why he suddenly thought of MO Ruyue. Perhaps it was because her charisma was too strong, and she was outstanding in all aspects, making people feel a sense of security and trust.
It was the Bai familys blessing to be able to make such a friend before the disaster.
He suddenly got up and walked to the door. He opened the door and said to the personal servant waiting outside, Go and arrange for two people to escort Imperial Doctor Tian and Mr. Dus family away. Then, find another safe ce to settle down.
We must leave enough money and food. The people we send cannot be involved with our Bai family. In short Try your best to cut it.
He was already preparing for the worst-case scenario.
If there was still no news of King Zhennan and the Xiao family in a few days, then he could only stake everything on the risk of breaking through theter stages.
Yes, Young Master. Ill do it now.
Just as the servant was about to leave, he was stopped by Bai Shiyuan.
Wait, its better to leave a message for Lady Qin. Just say that we have let her down and hope that she can forgive us.
He hesitated for a while before saying this.
If it was possible, he would not be willing to break his promise.
The manservant responded and left. Very soon, he began to dispatch the people ana ording to Bal shiyuans Instructions.
Imperial Doctor Tian and Du Zhongheng had been evacuated by the Bai family. They had only gotten separated when the natural disaster struck. It was not easy for them to reunite in two different ces.
Because of his medical skills, Imperial Doctor Tians life was rtively better.
Some ces had food, medicine, and no doctors. The appearance of Imperial Doctor Tian was like having a pillow when one fell asleep. Both of them could take what they needed.
Du Zhonghengs days were much worse.
Although he had received MO Ruyues warning, he was still reluctant to part with the only book collection that he had collected for a long time when he fled. As a result, he did not have the time to bring some gold, silver, and food.
In the end, after the disaster, the most useless thing was the schr and the book in his hand. Everyone was struggling to survive Who was willing to exchange even a leaf for a book?
As a result, Du Zhongheng could not even make a living apart from a box of priceless books. He almost starved to death on the streets.
Fortunately, the Bai family was the first to find him. If they hade a dayter, they might have only seen him die on the streets.
After reuniting with the Bai family, Imperial Doctor Tian and Mr. Dus days became better again. They also gave up on the idea of settling down in a rtively stable city along the way.
Since Lady Qin is nning to go to the capital, then we might as well make a trip. At least we dont know where to find her in the vast world outside, but if we are in the capital, we will definitely find her as long as we keep looking. This was Du Zhonghengs first reaction after hearing the news about MO Ruyue.
This old man also retired from the capital. Although its not like before, I still have some connections. Perhaps when Lady Qin wants to gain a foothold in the capital, this old man can also help.
Imperial Doctor Tian considered it from another angle.
Back in the county town, Huichun Hall and the people had benefited a lot from MO Ruyue. Now, it was time for him to repay her.
Because of their firm attitude, Master Bai finally gave up the idea of finding a suitable ce for them to stay and continued to take the two of them on their way.
If not for the fact that the Bai familys identity was suddenly exposed, Bai Shiyuan would not have made the decision to send the two of them away secretly.
As long as the cutting work was done well, the higher-ups should not make things difficult for Imperial Doctor Tian and Du Zhongheng. After all, if everyone knew the identity of the Bai family and wanted to be on good terms with them, the higher-ups would have long followed the clues ande looking for them.
After learning that they had to leave first, Imperial Doctor Tian and Du
Zhongheng made the same choice.
Our two families have chosen to travel together and head to the capital first to make early ns for Lady Qins arrival. Please also thank the Bai family head for taking care of us in these days. I hope we can meet again in the capital in the future.
As Imperial Doctor Tian spoke, a thoughtful look shed across his eyes.
When the Bai family began to secretly move Imperial Doctor Tian and Du
Zhongheng, MO Ruyues carriage finally arrived at Chu City just after noon.
Uncle Liu had been loitering around the city gate since early in the morning, from the time the city gate was not opened untilte in the morning.
He had been sitting at a roadside stall, ordering a bowl of oil tea and slowly eating it. His eyes had been fixed on the pedestrians passing by the city gate, afraid that he would miss MO Ruyues trail.
This was something that they had agreed on long ago, saving MO Ruyue the time to enter the city and pretend to look for him.
As for the reason, it was very simple. Once he settled down, he would take the initiative to look for MO Ruyue and wait for news. This reason waspletely reasonable and would not arouse Deng Fengs suspicion.
In order to be the first to see Uncle Liu, MO Ruyue had even specially found an excuse to inform the city guards when they entered the city. Meanwhile, Gu Ying rode Little ck behind them to prevent Big ck and Little ck from unintentionally hurting anyone.
Although the soldiers of Chu City had only met MO Ruyue yesterday, they had only seen her in disguise.
MO Ruyue didnt change her facial features too much. She only used the shadow contrast to make some slight adjustments, but she was able to make the same appearance appearpletely different.
Wait. check! Whats in the car and whos apanying it?
The soldiers guarding the city were the same as yesterday. When they saw MO Ruyues carriage approaching, they shouted and walked over.
General, these are some of my familys food and herbs. Theres nothing
special.
As MO Ruyue spoke, she casually stuffed a small pouch into his hands.
It was a critical time now, and these things had to be done. Otherwise, it would be very troublesome if they were entangled.
The soldier deftly took the pouch under cover and weighed it in his hand. A satisfied smile appeared on his face and his tone of speaking became a little better.
Even if you dont have anything else, you still have to be inspected. This is the rule of entering the city. As long as theres really no contraband, well let you pass immediately.
General is right. You guys can go ahead and check.
MO Ruyue immediately waved her hand and pushed open the carriage door.
There were some sackcloth bags piled inside, emitting a strong herbal smell.
Deng Feng also took the initiative to open a bag. The smell of medicine was even stronger, causing the soldier to subconsciously take a step back.
Where did these herbse from? Theres a shortage of medicine everywhere now. Why do you have so many?
He had thought that MO Ruyues some herbs was just a few, but he did not expect it to be a sack that filled half the carriage.
The smile on his face froze, and his expression turned solemn.
These are all grown by my family. Im a doctor from Huichun Hall.
As MO Ruyue spoke, she took out themendation order that The Imperial Court had awarded her..
Chapter 454 - 454: Mother Is Back!
Chapter 454: Mother Is Back!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
That huge horizontal board was ced in the corner of her space warehouse and had never been hung up. However, this brocade had written that she should carry it with her at all times in case of emergency.
Now, it came in handy.
The soldier unfolded the brocade and saw that it was indeed a reward for MO Ruyues superb medical skills and kindness. Especially the bright red official seal at the end, which made his originally suspicious expression immediately change.
So you are Lady Qin? Weve heard a lot about you! You treated our brothers and family members, and all of them were cured. Who doesnt praise you for being a divine doctor?
We didnt know that you had arrived. Were really sorry!
MO Ruyue was a little surprised.
Ping City was hundreds of miles away from here, but her reputation had actually spread here?
Seemingly noticing her surprise, the soldier took the initiative to exin, IVs like this. Some of our brothers have rtives in Ping City. They have personally experienced being treated by you, so we are very convinced when we heard the news.
Not to mention that themendation you received has spread to many ces. Many of our brothers are envious of the brothers in Ping City for being so lucky.
I see. I was just doing my duty.
At that time, MO Ruyue had a deal with the Prefect of Ping City, Duanmu Xize.
However, she had also tried her best to treat all the soldiers and their families. It could be said that she had a clear conscience when she received this award.
Lady Qin, you can go over now. We have dyed you for so long. We are really sorry.
The soldier took the initiative to invite MO Ruyue into the city and even wanted to return the purse he had received to her.
Theres still some food in the trailer behind. Arent you going to take a look? MO Ruyue waved her hand and pushed the purse back.
No need. We just hope that if we need treatment in the future, we can also meet Lady Qin to treat us.
As the soldier spoke, hisrades who had already surrounded him nodded.
Not only for themselves, but also for their families.
Alright, Ill leave now. Theres such a long queue behind. Dont dy everyone because of me.
MO Ruyue turned her head to take a look. As she spoke, a long line had already formed behind her.
It seemed that the impact of the disaster was gradually weakening. No matter how difficult it was, the lives of the people would slowly recover and return to the right track.
The soldiers stepped aside to make way for MO Ruyue and saluted her.
Deng Feng had already alighted from the carriage and was leading the horse into the city. MO Ruyue sat on the shaft of the carriage and waved at the soldiers.
After building a good rtionship with these soldiers, it would be much more convenient for her to enter and leave the city.
Ruyue, here!
Not long after they entered the city gate, MO Ruyue heard Uncle Lius voice.
She looked in the direction of the voice and saw him standing up from a small stall and running over excitedly.
Uncle Liu! Why are you here?
MO Ruyue acted as she had promised and put on a surprised expression. I was thinking that I might have to go further north before I could hear from you. I didnt expect to meet you here.
We also want to continue heading north, but the babies really miss you. The situation here is rtively stable and much safer, so we discussed whether we should settle down first and see if we can meet.
Ive also asked around about this city. If you want to go to the capital, youll definitely pass by here, so I finally decided to stay.
Dont say it, Ive really waited for it!
Uncle Liu was a man of few words. In order to express his surprise and joy of meeting again after a long time, he had put in a lot of effort to say such a long string of words.
Thank you for your hard work, Uncle Liu. Where are the babies now? I cant wait to see them!
Mo Ruyue was telling the truth. She would not be separated from the babies anymore.
On the way to see the babies with MO Ruyue, Deng Feng was first introduced to Uncle Liu.
The two of them had warm temperaments. However, one was silent and introverted, while the other was straightforward and extroverted. Their personalitiesplemented each other, and they could be considered to have hit it off at first sight.
The carriage stopped outside the courtyard. Two extremely handsome ck wolves ran out of the courtyard first, followed by an extremely handsome and lively little boy.
When he saw MO Ruyue, he was stunned for a moment, then he broke into a big smile and rushed over to her.
Mother! Youre finally back!
Before he reached MO Ruyue, he turned around and shouted into the courtyard, Hurry up ande out. Mother is back!
There was a flurry of footsteps. The other four babies ran out of the yard one after another, including Da Bao, who had always been calm and steady.
However, just as he ran out of the courtyard door, he stopped and hesitated for a moment before slowly walking over.
MO Ruyue opened her arms and pulled the babies into her arms. She said to Da Bao, who was still walking slowly behind her, Come, let Mother hug you.
This child had never learned to show his emotions calmly. He clearly wanted to pounce on her, but he still walked slowly as if he had never run before.
Im already grown up. Why are you hugging me?
Da Bao mumbled in a low voice. Although he was tough with his words, he was very honest with his actions. Before he could finish speaking, he was already standing not far away from MO Ruyue. She pulled him into her arms.
Mother, you wont leave again this time, right? Have you saved all the people who should be saved?
Tang Tanf raised her head and looked at MO Ruyue. Although she knew that her mother wouldnt leave this time, she still asked again with uncertainty.
Mother wont leave, but there are too many people affected. Mother alone cant save them. However, there are still many disaster victims in the city. There should be more on the way to the capital in the future. If we encounter them, we will try our best to help.
As MO Ruyue spoke, she turned around and pointed at Deng Feng, who was standing beside the carriage. Come, Mother will introduce you to someone. He will be living with us in the future. You can call him Uncle Feng.
This is Mothers sworn brother. You have to respect him as your own uncle, understand?
Hello, Uncle Feng!
Tang Tang greeted Deng Feng with a sweet smile.
Hello, Uncle Feng!
The other boys followed suit. Even Da Bao said softly.
After yesterdays preventive shot, the children epted Deng Feng much faster than Gu Ying.
Good, good, good babies!
Deng Feng rubbed his hands excitedly, his voice trembling as he spoke.
He had never thought that he would be able to be a family with MO Ruyue and her babies.
When the babies epted him, he secretly swore that he would give the loyalty he had given to MO Ruyue and Gu Ying to these adorable babies as well.
And Uncle Ying.
MO Ruyue had not forgotten about Gu Ying. She had noticed from the corner of her eye that his expression was a little unnatural.
So after introducing Deng Feng, she reminded the babies that there was another person present..
Chapter 455 - 455: I’m Going to Pester You
Chapter 455: Im Going to Pester You
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Uncle Ying, thank you for protecting Mother and bringing her back safely. This time, it was San Bao who took the initiative to greet him.
His feelings toward Gu Ying were veryplicated. On one hand. he admired
Gu Yings skills and abilities, but on the other hand, he hated Gu Ying for staying by his mothers side.
He didnt have a deep impression of his father, Qin Ming, but that didnt mean that he could ept anyone as his stepfather.
After the discussion about his stepfather in the carriage yesterday, he had been thinking about what would happen if Gu Ying really became his stepfather. After thinking about it all night, the result was That feeling should be pretty good!
Her mother was a very strong woman. Of course, a man who could match her had to be at least on par with her.
Previously, they had secretly thought that perhaps Mr. Du could be that person, but now they thought about it, there was still something missing.
Especially after Uncle Yings appearance, her mothers behavior toward him waspletely different from how she treated Mr. Du. No, it waspletely different!
Although they were still very young and there were many things that they did not understand, at least they could tell who their mother was more natural and happy with.
Uncle Ying has worked hard!
Tang Tang and Si Bao also thanked Gu Ying.
Although these two babies also missed their biological father, Qin Ming, they did not even have the most basic impression of him.
In addition, Gu Ying looked almost identical to Qin Ming, so it was not that difficult for them to ept it. At least with the effect of empathy, this process would only be simpler and not more difficult.
Thank you.
Er Bao and Da Bao also expressed their gratitude. They only said two simple words.
It was already good enough for Gu Ying that they could express their opinions. He did not pick on their attitudes. After all, there was only one person he cared about wholeheartedly, and that was MO Ruyue.
Alright, lets not stand at the door. Lets go home. In order to celebrate our reunion today, Mother will make you a good meal today!
MO Ruyues announcement immediately drew a burst of cheers from the babies.
It had been a long time since they had eaten their mothers cooking.
During the time she was out saving people, it was not easy to even see her, let alone eat the food she cooked.
For the babies, MO Ruyues cooking was the best reward for them.
Everyone quickly returned to the courtyard. Before preparing the food, they had to arrange Deng Feng and Gu Yings amodation.
MO Ruyue naturally wanted to sleep together with Tang Tang. Mr. and Mrs. Liu would stay in one room, and the four boys would stay in two rooms. The rooms in the courtyard were more or less enough.
Gu Ying and Deng Feng could sleep in the same room, but MO Ruyue had already taken this into consideration when she rented the house. Therefore, she spared no expense to rent this small two-story courtyard. The wing room was just enough for the two of them to share a room each.
Brother Feng,ter, you, Uncle Liu, and Aunt Liu will go around the streets and see what else you can buy. We still have to rest here for a period of time. We cant just make do with this.
MO Ruyue had rented the courtyard temporarily yesterday. Although it was fully furnished, she had not had the time to purchase some necessities. Since everyone was reunited today, she decided to buy them all at onceo
Im fine with anything. Theres no need to add anything else. Deng Feng shook his head.
The current life was already something he did not even dare to think about before. He was afraid that if he had any unsatisfied thoughts, he would be punished by the heavens.
Its settled then. Listen to me?
MO Ruyue would not listen to him, so she directly made the decision for him.
In the afternoon, the babies went shopping with the Liu couple and Deng Feng, while MO Ruyue and Gu Ying began to stroll around the city with another purpose.
Their footprints not only covered the streets and alleys of the city, but they even dabbled in ces like gambling dens and brothels. It took them more than two hours to circle around.
Gu Ying, what do you think of this sketch I drew?
MO Ruyue picked up a piece of paper and carefully blew the ink on it. It was a topographic map of Chu City.
If its just a sketch, its enough.
Gu Ying walked over to examine it, then pointed at a certain spot on the paper. This is it. I seem to have remembered the name of the building wrongly.
Where? How could I have remembered wrongly!
MO Ruyuespetitive spirit was aroused by his words. She turned her head to look at the spot Gu Ying was pointing at, but was pulled into his arms. I remembered wrongly. Theres actually nothing there.
Gu Ying hugged MO Ruyue from behind and whispered in her ear. The hot air blew onto her neck and ears, and soon, it turned pink.
MO Ruyue shrunk her neck in fear of the ticklish sensation and snuggled into Gu Yings arms. She hugged his arms and smiled sweetly.
I knew you were ying tricks. I want to see what youre up to.
Bing Er, its rare for us to be so close these days.
Gu Ying buried his head in her neck and shoulders like a spoiled golden retriever. There was a rare trace of grievance in his voice, but it made MO Ruyues smile deepen.
Yes, after I bring Brother Feng along, I have to be careful. After all, Im still a widow and were not married yet.
MO Ruyues unintentional words seemed to have touched Gu Yings sore spot. He immediately grabbed her shoulders and turned her around.
Bing Er, are you ming me for not proposing to you earlier? If youre willing, Ill
I didnt. I just said it unintentionally.
The smile in MO Ruyues eyes froze. When she saw the urgency and self-reproach in Gu Yings eyes, her heart clenched. She hurriedly covered his lips with her hand and exined earnestly.
Ying, you know that weve decided on each other. To me, finding you is the greatest fortune. In fact, even without any ritual, youre the person I never want to let go of!
But I
Gu Ying stared into MO Ruyues eyes. He was anxious to get affirmation, but he was afraid of losing her. He was careful, which made MO Ruyues heart ache even more.
Her man had always been the calmest and most confident. When had he ever
had such a look of self-doubt on his face?
Was this the magic of love?
It could make a person no longer like him, worrying about gains and losses. No matter how proud a person was, they would fall from the clouds and be insignificant.
How could she bear to let her man suffer like this? She tiptoed and wrapped her arms around his neck, pulling him closer to her and pressing her forehead against his.
Gu Ying, no one can separate us, not even you. Anyway, Im going to stick to you and cling to you. Youre not allowed to doubt yourself and dont care about any form of things.
Compared to the fact that you and I can be together, the form is not important.
These words slowly soothed the uneasiness in Gu Yings heart.
He and Bing Er had always ignored the eyes of the world and were not bound by secr etiquette. He did not expect that after rebirth, they would be restrained.
Perhaps it was because the number of people he cared about had increased, so he subconsciously took the other partys views into consideration..
Chapter 456 - 456: A Commonly Accepted Foodie
Chapter 456: A Commonly epted Foodie
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Yes, I was thinking too much. Bing Er, I wont do it again.
Gu Ying slowly tightened his arms and felt the fragrant and warm female body tightly fit in his arms. Only then did he sigh in satisfaction.
Alright, weve just finished the sketch. Now, lets perfect this topographic map. After that, I still have to go home and cook a feast.
MO Ruyue also wanted to stay in Gu Yings arms and not think about anything else. But when she thought of the children at home who were crying for food, she could only forcefully pull herself out of his arms.
Alright, its just a little fleshy. Its not difficult. Ill do it.
Gu Ying was also an expert at drawing. He took the pen from MO Ruyues hand and began to draw on the sketch.
While the two of them were strolling around the city, they bought some ink and paper. Then, they found an inconspicuous inn and booked a room.
In this room, they were going to draw theyout of the entire Chu City. Of course, this matter could not be known to the others in the family.
Unless it was absolutely necessary, MO Ruyue did not want the babies to know about her other identity.
In their hearts, she was now a beautiful and powerful mother. That was enough. Those things lurking in the dark abyss, hopefully, would never surface again.
While Gu Ying was drawing, MO Ruyue entered the space again.
She had prepared several buckets of diluted spring water in case of emergency.
After a great disaster, there must be a great gue.
The meteorite disaster affected a wide area, and the people suffered heavy casualties. Whether it was the government or the people, the rescue efforts were far from enough. It was unknown how many people were buried under the ruins.
Previously, it was only because of the cold weather that the speed of decay of the corpses was slowed down. However, as the weather rapidly warmed up, this situation was inevitable.
The natural disaster was only the beginning. The subsequent epidemic would once again worsen the suffering of the country.
MO Ruyue did not let her guard down just because she was in a rtively safe environment.
Once the epidemic spread, there would be no safe ce to hide unless they hid in remote ces like the mountains or directly escaped into space.
She knew that her ability was limited and she might not be able to save everyone. However, in order to prevent her babies from living in an environment of social unrest, she could only do her best.
Fortunately, she still had the spirit spring water, which could quickly and effectively remove the bacteria and toxins in the human body. It could also better stimte the medicinal properties of the herbs, speeding up the recovery process and safety.
She had prepared all these in advance so that she could deal with the outbreak as soon as possible.
No matter what kind of rescue situation it was, time was the most important factor.
Time waited for no one. Everything she was doing now was to fight against the Grim Reaper to save people.
MO Ruyue had set the time flow in the space so that she would have more time to prepare the medicine. She had also predicted what kind of epidemic might ur based on her experience and listed several alternative prescriptions.
By the time she came out of the space, less than an hour had passed in the outside world, and Gu Ying had already finished drawing the detailed map.
The two of them immediately packed their things and rushed home.
MO Ruyue heard a burst ofughtering from inside the courtyard as soon as she reached the entrance.
It seemed like San Bao had made a fool of himself and was being teased by Er
Bao.
Whats so funny? Tell me about it.
MO Ruyue walked into the courtyard and immediately attracted the babies attention.
Mother, youre back! We were talking about how Third Brother cleaned up the house and piled up a room full of sticks and swords, making Second Brothers books and ounts books have no ce to put them.
Second Brother said that Third Brother cant just grow muscles and not brains. Otherwise, he wont have the face to see Mr. Du in the future. Si Baoughed as he spoke. He did not forget to take the things from MO
Ruyues hands.
Mother, did you go shopping too? Why arent you with us?
Tang Tang tilted her head and looked at her, then at Gu Ying, who was following behind her. She pursed her lips and two sweet dimples appeared on her lips.
With Uncle Ying here, are you afraid that Mother will get lost?
Si Bao also chimed in. The two little kids looked at each other and smiled slyly.
MO Ruyue didnt expect that she would be teased by two little kids. She didnt Imow whether tough or cry as she turned around and nced at Gu Ying.
Although thetter still had an indifferent and calm look on his face, there was a hint of a smile in his eyes when he looked closely. It was obvious that he was very happy about this.
Little thing, youve grown up now. Your wings have hardened. Youve learned to tease your Mother, havent you?
MO Ruyue stuffed the thing in her hand into Si Baos hands, deliberately letting his hands fill up. Then, she began to tickle his armpits.
Haha, Mother, Im sorry, I wont dare to do it again! Please spare me!
Si Bao did not dare to throw away the thing in his hand, so he could only twist his body to avoid it. However, he was trapped in MO Ruyues arms and could not escape, so he twisted like a soybean worm that could not stop.
Seeing this, Tang Tang was in a bad mood. She wanted to escape, but MO Ruyue dragged her back and tickled her body.
The screams andughter drew the people out of the house. When they saw them standing at the doorughing, they just stood aside and watched the show. No one went forward to help the two babies.
Soon, a thinyer of sweat appeared on the foreheads of the two babies, and their faces were flushed red. MO Ruyue was afraid that they would catch a cold, so she stopped and wiped the sweat off each of them.
Alright, you guys go back and wipe your sweat. Change your clothes and dont catch a cold. Mother will go and cook now. Otherwise, we wont be able to eat until veryte at night.
Si Baos eyes lit up the moment MO Ruyue said she wanted to cook.
Mother, let me help you! If I call big Brother and the others to help, the cooking speed would be very fast! Weve worked together for so long, and the effect is great!
Although he simply wanted to help MO Ruyue, she felt an indescribable sadness after hearing his words.
It was because the time she could spend with them was too short, so they had to cook and take care of themselves. That was why they had such a deep understanding of each other.
Although MO Ruyue had done it on purpose, she had also neglected her duty.
Ill do it myself. Its been a while since I cooked for you guys alone. This time, Ill show you something new. How about it?
When they heard that their mother was going to do something new, all the babies gathered around and looked at her expectantly.
Mother, what are you going to cook for us this time?
San Bao was publicly acknowledged as a foodie.
Si Bao was only more interested in the process of cooking delicacies, but San Bao was excited by the smell of food. Once he heard that there was delicious food, he could not move his legs.
In short, you guys just wait to eat. Now, Si Bao, Tamg Tang, you guys go and change your clothes. The rest of you go and do what you need to do. Mother will clean up a little and start cooking.
Hehe, Mother, we went shopping in the afternoon and bought a lot of things to decorate the house! After dinner, you cane and see our results.
Er Bao couldnt wait to show off his new room..
Chapter 457 - 457: The Best Arrange
Chapter 457: The Best Arrange
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Back then, MO Ruyue had spent a lot of effort decorating their room. Now, he wanted his mother to feel the happiness they had felt back then.
After a busy afternoon, everyones room had changed greatly. It looked warmer and morefortable than the day before.
The most important thing was that the family was finally reunited. Such excitement and satisfaction filled the entire courtyard withughter.
Even Deng Feng, who had just joined, was infected by the happy atmosphere and naturally blended in without any sense of discord.
As soon as MO Ruyue stepped into her room, she was startled for a moment. Then, she stepped back to make sure that she was in the right room before returning to her room.
Her room was exactly the same as the one in the Qin Vige. Even the curtains hanging on the window were the same.
All of you Where did you find these things?
Mo Ruvuae turned around and looked at the babies behind her. She could not hide the surprise on her face.
Hehe, theres a way. Mother, quickly take a look. Is there anything different?
Er Bao said proudly, patting his chest and taking credit. This is what we all wanted. So, I decided to contribute a little.
I guessed it was you.
MO Ruyue nodded.
Er Bao had the most ideas among the babies. If there was something new or fun, it would be his idea.
It was also thanks to his many ideas that the babies lives did not seem so boring. From time to time, some trouble would pop up, but of course, they were more happy.
She walked around the room again and finally nodded again. Not bad, its really exactly the same. It gave Mother a surprise!
Now, she finally understood that some of the things must have been moved out of the courtyard in the space by the babies.
To be able to fool her, it also meant that they had a certain level of talent and foundation to be the great viin in the original text.
Alright, children, its really gettingte. Hurry up and let your mother start preparing dinner.
Aunt Liu only stood up at this time, and her words made everyone put away their yful thoughts.
Yes, you guys went out for a long time this afternoon. The books that should be warmed havent been warmed yet. Shouldnt you work hard before eating? By this time, the academy had already started its spring sses.
Because of the disaster, she couldnt go to the academy that she originally wanted to go to. However, she couldnt let her childrens sses fall behind because of this.
Mother, if we can find Mr. Du, you wont have to worry about our studies, right?
Da Bao suddenly asked, and the room fell silent.
Er Bao looked at his elder brother meaningfully and understood his intention almost immediately.
Mr. Du was a good candidate for a stepfather, but his mother might not be interested.
A strong and outstanding woman like her mother should have a man who could stand by her side. Mr. Du was indeed a proud son of heaven, but he was still too weak for her mother.
At the very least, he did not know any martial arts. If he were to encounter any bandits and robbers, he would have to rely on his mother to protect his family. Just this point alone was enough for his mother to exclude him.
If Du Zhongheng knew that Er Bao had criticized him in such a way, he would be furious.
With his character, appearance, family background, and knowledge, many young women admired him. However, in Qin Qingduos eyes, only knowledge was worth mentioning.
Mr. Du left with the Bai family. If we want to find him, we have to find the Bai family first. However, Da Baos suggestion is not bad. If we can find Mr. Du, its not inappropriate for him to teach you another lesson.
MO Ruyue did not seem to understand what Da Bao was implying and praised his suggestion.
In fact, she really had this thought.
She did not know how long it would take to consider the childrens studies after they entered the capital.
Du Zhongheng was known as the number one schr in the world. Even if he was boycotted by schrs, his knowledge was real. If they could really find him, it would be the best arrangement at the moment.
Now that everyone has settled down and theres nothing else, I can go and look for clues.
Gu Ying volunteered as if he didnt know that Du Zhongheng was his love rival. He had taken the initiative as soon as he said that, which made Da Baos n fail.
I think this suggestion is feasible. We must find the Bai family. After all, we are all very good friends now. We also need to find Imperial Doctor Tian. As long as hes still around, Huichun Halls name will not fall.
MO Ruyue responded to Gu Yings words with a smile. From her words and actions, she began to confirm Gu Yings status in this family.
Da Bao watched the interaction between the two of them coldly. He lowered his eyes, thinking about something, but he didnt say anything else.
The small disturbance disappeared without a trace. It was like a stone thrown into ake, causing ripples before quickly returning to calm.
However, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were very concerned about this matter.
Finding the Bai Family had be their top priority in the near future.
As the night deepened, the small courtyard gradually quieted down.
The babies had finished reading and had already washed up andid down to sleep. The candles in the Liu couples room were still burning, and the figures reflected in the window were sitting opposite each other, as if they were talking about something.
Deng Feng was already sound asleep.
It had been a long time since he had experienced the feeling of having a family.
Once he experienced it again today, even drinking water was enough to make him drunk. He was so drunk that he snored as soon as his head touched the pillow.
Fortunately, MO Ruyue had prepared beforehand. She had hung ayer of straw curtains and cotton wool on the walls of his room to make a simple and effective sound treatment to prevent the i noise from affecting the babies sleep quality.
On the eaves outside the house, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying sat opposite each other, each holding a wine jar.
Gu Ying, it hasnt been long since things settled down, and youre already going to run around again.
MO Ruyue picked up the wine jar and took a sip. She suddenly remembered that before she reunited with Gu Ying, she had once sat alone on the roof, admiring the moon and drinking wine.
Now that the person she had been longing for was right beside her, the loneliness that was about to part came crashing down on her again, enveloping her inyers.
Im just going anding back. Compared to the rain of bullets and swords in the past, its very safe now. Theres no need to worry.
Gu Ying also took a sip. He could see the longing in MO Ruyues eyes. He was reluctant to part with her, but as long as it was to fulfill her wish, he would not hesitate even if he had to go through fire and water.
The Bai familys background is unfathomable, and theyve been hiding in the streets for a long time. Its hard to say if this natural disaster wont cause any changes.
Gu Ying, I have a feeling that your trip wont be so simple. Although I dont want to jinx it, you must not be careless. If theres anything wrong,e back to me immediately. I dont allow you to act willfully and do anything alone. MO Ruyue turned her head to look at him. Her eyes reflected the bright moonlight in the sky. They looked like sparkling waves, tempting him to look deep into her eyes..
Chapter 458 - 458: An Important Place in the Prefectural Office, No Trespassing!
Chapter 458: An Important ce in the Prefectural Office, No Trespassing!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Bing Er, do you still need to be so worried about me?
Gu Ying smiled. Although he was teasing her, his heart felt as if it had drunk honey. His eyes were so thick that they could pull out threads.
Ying, Im serious. You have to agree.
MO Ruyues expression was extremely solemn as she stared into Gu Yings eyes, wanting him to promise her.
Although he did not know where her worries came from, Gu Ying had always obeyed her requests as long as they did not endanger her safety. Seeing that she was serious, he nodded without hesitation.
Of course Ill agree to your request. If theres anything wrong with this trip, Ille back immediately and discuss it with you before taking action.
Gu Ying did not think that MO Ruyue had underestimated him. On the contrary, she had deeply loved him, which was why she was so worried about his ability.
Therefore, his gaze became even gentler. His deep voice slowly spread out in the night, like the bass strings of a cello being plucked and sung. It made MO Ruyues ears hot and itchy. Her eyes were glued to his, and she was particrly reluctant to part with him.
The two of them drank and admired the moon on the roof, chatting untilte at night.
Before dawn, Gu Ying held Little cks hand and set off alone.
In order to ensure his safety, MO Ruyue had specially adjusted the time in the space and concocted a series of life-saving medicines for him. She had even prepared a small jar of spirit spring water.
This thing was better than any elixir. It had super cell recovery ability and poison cleaning ability. It could guarantee that as long as Gu Ying was not beheaded or pierced through the heart by a sword, even the King of Hell would not be able to take him away.
It was a pity that Gu Ying did not have a portable space like MO Ruyues. However, she still used the advanced technology in the space to research a miniature capsule and stuffed all the medicine and other items she had prepared into it.
Parting was always the most torturous, especially when two people were deeply in love. They had not been together for long and had to face separation again. Naturally, it was difficult to part.
However, the two of them were also extremely rational people. In the past, when they were on missions, they would often not see each other for months. In fact, they were already used to such a life.
After a round of intimate contact, Gu Ying put the miniature capsule into the hundred treasure purse that he carried with him. Under MO Ruyues insistence, he brought along a giant wolf.
MO Ruyue had sent him out of the city, sending him off for thousands of miles.
She flew up to the top of the tree and watched Gu Yings figure gradually fade away.
Seeing MO Ruyuee back alone, the babies couldnt help but look at Da Bao.
If it wasnt for Big Brothers words, Uncle Ying wouldnt have volunteered to look for their teacher, Du Zhongheng.
Da Bao ignored the gazes that were directed at him, but after being stared at too many times, he finally raised his eyes impatiently and nced back at them coldly.
The younger siblings all ducked their heads and avoided him. The boss majesty was undoubtedly disyed at this moment.
MO Ruyue saw through everything but did not say anything.
Chu City was also an important road to the north. When they were surveying the terrain in the city yesterday, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying had split up to investigate. There was no trace of the Bai Family staying there.
In fact, Gu Yings departure was not entirely to find Du Zhongheng. MO Ruyue was more worried that something might have happened to the Bai family and they would go into hiding again.
Although she was a person who was afraid of trouble, her rtionship with the Bai family was not ordinary. Naturally, she would not turn a blind eye to the disaster that might happen to her.
Although MO Ruyue stayed in Chu City, she did not be idle.
The first thing she had to do today was to go to the government office.
As Chu City had not experienced the baptism of natural disasters, everything seemed to be running smoothly. However, as one walked on the streets, one could see disaster victims living under the eaves and corners of the walls on both sides of the road.
Many of them had already recovered from their external injuries, but their internal injuries, hunger, and desperation were still clearly written on their faces.
Along the way, MO Ruyue had given out rations to countless beggars. There was even a group of children following behind the carriage, looking for an opportunity to ask for more things from her.
As the government office gradually approached, the children following behind began to stop one after another. They watched MO Ruyues carriage from afar and did not dare to move forward.
Two burly bailiffs were standing at the entrance of the government office. When they saw MO Ruyueing forward, they immediately pulled out half of their sabers and blocked the way.
Who is it? What is it? Report your name! This is an important ce in the government office. You are not allowed to trespass!
MO Ruyue was taken aback. Although the government office was an important ce for officials, there would still be people who woulde to beat the drum and voice their grievances.
If these bailiffs were blocking the inner courtyard, it would be fine. But why was it that even the main entrance outside was tightly blocked, and even the wronging drum was sealed?
Im a doctor from Huichun Hall. Im here to see the county magistrate.
As she spoke, she showed themendation order issued by The Imperial Court to the two of them.
The bright red official seal was raised, proving that MO Ruyue was not lying. The two bailiffs expressions immediately changed when they saw it.
So its Lady Qin. Everyone in Chu City knows your name. What brings you here?
A bailiff wanted to get close to her, but MO Ruyue also wanted to get some information from him, so she said, I came from the south. After the previous natural disaster, I have a lot of rescue experience. I also have important matters to discuss with you.
Aiya, that natural disaster was said to be too terrifying. Many cities and viges were hit by huge flint stones, and all of them died in an instant. When
Lady Qin saw that miserable situation, she must have felt very ufortable.
The bailiff took the opportunity to start a conversation with MO Ruyue. The moment the conversation started, they seemed to be much closer.
Officer, I see that there are many disaster victims in the city. They must have escaped from the south. I wonder what the situation in the city is like now.
MO Ruyue avoided the bailiffs question and began to fish out the bailiffs information.
Perhaps it was because of MO Ruyues title as a Divine Doctor and the honor of being recognized by The Imperial Court, the bailiff did not reject MO Ruyues question. Instead, he felt a sense of pride because she was willing to respond to him.
Sigh, dont mention it. At first, we also felt that the disaster victims were very pitiful, but as more and more people gathered, this trouble came. Its not just the problem of food and herbs, but also the problem of amodation and future survival.
Our Chu City is also considered a traffic fortress. It can be said that it is quite rich, but it cant withstand so many people squeezing in. Even the usual public security situation has begun to deteriorate.
Our county magistrate is famous for his honesty and kindness. He is also worried about this situation. But how can Chu City support so many people on its own?
Once he said that, she couldnt stop.
After talking for a long time, MO Ruyue had a general understanding of Chu Citys situation.
This was the drawback of not having an efficient and unified government. Although she met the prince who went to the disaster relief on the way, the process of coordinating the allocation of resources was too long.
There were only seventy-two hours of golden rescue time after the disaster, but by the time the imperial courts supplies arrived, it was already more than a monthter. The problems caused by this low efficiency were really serious..
Chapter 459 - 459: The Isolated Patient
Chapter 459: The Isted Patient
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Aiya, look at this mouth of ours, its limitless when talking to Lady Qin. Lady Qin, youre looking for Eldest Master, it must be something very important, right? Please wait for a moment, well go and inform them right away.
At least the bailiff was able to restrain himself and didnt chat with MO Ruyue for three days and three nights.
After exchanging pleasantries, he went in to report. Not long after, hurried footsteps came from inside, as if many people were running out.
Which one is Lady Qin? Where is Lady Qin?
The first person who ran out was nearly sixty years old. The hair under the ck gauze hat was already mostly white, and there were deep wrinkles on his face. One look and one could tell that he was a person who had been through a lot of hardships.
His clothes already revealed his identity. He was the county magistrate of Chu City.
Grand Master, I am MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue took the initiative to step forward and cupped her hands in greeting. Her neither servile nor overbearing manner made the magistrate, who had heard the voice and looked over, nod his head secretly.
She was indeed a graceful and extraordinary figure. Only such a graceful figure was worthy of her superb medical skills, which were known as divine skills.
Lady Qin, this official is Chu Citys county magistrate Fan Yi. I heard that Lady
Qin hase to this ce and has something to look for this official for. May
I know whats the matter?
Fan Yis words and actions seemed to be somewhat inconsistent. MO Ruyue had asked to see him, but he had rushed out as soon as he heard the announcement. Just his eagerness was intriguing.
Sir Fan, I do have something to ask you for help. I wonder if I can go inside and discuss it in detail?
As soon as MO Ruyue said this, Fan Yis eyes immediately lit up. It was obvious that her words were exactly what he wanted.
Thats good. Then, pleasee in, lets talk inside.
After Fan Yi finished speaking, he said to the bailiffs, Close the doors of the government office for the time being. We wont ept anyints today.
If theres anything, report it tomorrow.
Fan Yi personally led MO Ruyue to the back hall. Such a solemn act made her even more certain that something major had happened.
Lady Qin, did you juste from the south? Have you seen any unusual cases?
Fan Yis words made MO Ruyues heart sink.
Sir Fan, could it be that there is an epidemic in the city?
She said straightforwardly.
Does Lady Qin know?
Fan Yi raised his head, his eyes full of surprise. He asked anxiously, Did someone find out about your identity as a divine doctor and went to beg you? MO Ruyue shook her head and said coldly, No, but I know that there will be a gue after the disaster. The people in the south have suffered heavy casualties, and there has been no rescue for more than a month.
It was fine when the weather was cold a few days ago, but now that the weather is getting warmer and the temperature is rising, the bodies buried under the ruins will definitely rot faster. An epidemic is inevitable.
But Chu City is already in the north, and the disaster victims who cane here should have already arrived. Why is it that theres no news from there yet and theyre already starting here?
As she spoke, she was analyzing the situation in her mind.
If there was really an epidemic, it would definitely start at the center of the disaster, and then spread rapidly along with the disced victims.
If there was really an epidemic in Chu City, it meant that the epidemic had already begun to spread while she was still on the road. It had even reached Chu City before her.
She had thought that she could temporarily stay in a safe ce, but now it
seemed that it had be so dangerous and unpredictable.
MO Ruyue suddenly felt a little regretful. She really should have made some inquiries first and only brought the babies out of the space after making sure that everything was fine.
What Lady Qin said is true. Since you have already guessed it, this official will not hide it anymore. Thats right, there were a few abnormal cases in the city. However, I made a prompt decision and sent them far away from the city. I found a remote vige and isted them.
However, this is only a temporary solution. If its really an epidemic, it wille back sooner orter. By then, no one in the city will be able to escape.
So when I heard the announcement that Lady Qin had arrived, it was as if I had seen a brightmp in the dark night. I immediately felt hopeful. Lady Qin, please save all the citizens of Chu City!
Fan Yi even bowed deeply to MO Ruyue as he spoke.
Even though MO Ruyue had the honor of The Imperial Court and was still amoner, Fan Yi was an official.
With his rank of Seventh Grade, it was obvious that he really regarded MO Ruyue as his savior and ced all his hopes on her.
Sir Fan, you dont have to be so polite. If I stand by and do nothing about this matter, it will inevitably affect me. Besides, I came here for this matter in the first ce. No matter what, Ill take care of this matter.
MO Ruyues words made Fan Yis eyes light up. He was so excited that his eyes turned red, and his lips trembled. He couldnt even speak.
In the end, he took a few deep breaths to calm himself down. Then, he looked at MO Ruyue and said in a trembling voice, Lady Qin is really kind-hearted. With your words, the people of Chu City will be saved.
Sir Fan, lets not talk about this anymore. Take me to see the patients who have been isted. I want all the information you have gathered so far. I want to intercede for them in every detail.
MO Ruyue turned around and immediately walked towards the door.
Alright, the carriage is ready. Lets talk as we walk.
Fan Yi actually wanted to go with MO Ruyue instead of randomly finding a private advisor and bailiff to lead the way. This alone was already more outstanding than most of the officials.
MO Ruyue got into the carriage. As soon as she sat down, the carriage wheels started to move slowly. The speed of the carriage gradually increased, and it
was already speeding away when they were still in the city.
Get out of the way, quickly get out of the way! Master is out on patrol, so please leave!
There was the sound of government runners riding horses in front of them. Perhaps Fan Yi had already made relevant ns, so even though the main road of the city was bustling with people, it was quickly cleared out.
Lady Qin, the matter is like this
Fan Yi began to tell her the ins and outs of the matter.
It turned out that five days ago, a disaster victim with a high fever copsed at the entrance of the citys medical center. The doctor was not there at that time, and only the medicine boy stayed in the medical center.
Because he had seen many disaster victims seeking medical treatment during this period of time, the medicine boy was not too surprised when he saw the disaster victim with high fever.
He only grabbed the cheapest fever medicine, fried it, and fed it to the disaster victim. He did not do anything else.
This was also the only thing he could do within his scope of authority. After all, there were too many people like this, and he simply could not save them all.
Unexpectedly, the disaster victims fever did not go down. Not long after, he spat out blood and convulsed to death.
This time, the medicine boy was scared out of his wits. He hurriedly went to find a doctor. The dead person was wrapped in a white cloth and carried to the storage room in the backyard to be temporarily parked.
After the doctor rushed back, he left the room in a panic and immediately ordered to use quicklime and wormwood to disinfect it.
At the same time, he immediately reported this matter to the county magistrate.
That night, the other disaster victims, medicine boys, and doctors who had contact with the disaster victims all had symptoms of high fever, convulsions, and breathing difficulties to varying degrees. I ordered people to take precautions and sent everyone out of the city overnight.
Fortunately, there were other doctors outside the clinic at that time. After they knew that there was a suspicious case, they immediately carried out a quarantine, so no one died.
Otherwise, I would really be at my wits end now. I have no one to use.
Fan Yi finished speaking in one breath and took a deep breath to calm himself down. His face was filled with helplessness..
Chapter 460 - 460: Feeling Guilty
Chapter 460: Feeling Guilty
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Thats right, Sir Fan. The doctors in your citys Chinese medicine hall reacted very quickly. If they hadnt responded in time, Im afraid the consequences would have been even more serious.
Based on your description, my preliminary judgment is that it should be a highly contagious disease with a high mortality rate. Prompt quarantine is definitely the most important thing.
However, we cant neglect the investigation in the city. We still dont know how many people are the potential source of infection. Chu City is a medium-sized city. With such a high poption density, the consequences will be unimaginable if we are careless.
MO Ruyue took a few more nces at Fan Yi. It was not that she had never met a doctor with extremely high medical skills. She had also met many quacks. However, it was rare to see someone with such a keen sense of smell and such a decisive treatment.
This small official of Chu City was different from the others. Even the doctor was the same. It was really surprising.
After leaving Chu City, the carriage traveled for the time for two incense sticks to burn before finally stopping at a small vige at the foot of a mountain.
The original vigers here had been evacuated. Those who had rtives went to their rtives and friends. Those who had no rtives were arranged by Fan Yi to go elsewhere.
This was equivalent to using the vige as a quarantine site. Although it was more like an undeserved disaster for the evacuated people, it also ensured that they would not be infected by the epidemic.
The small vige had been surrounded by the soldiers who had been sent over.
Countless wooden sticks as thick as wrists were pointed in the direction of the vige, and the other end was deeply embedded in the ground, making it look like a barricade.
This was also to prevent the people in the vige from sneaking out. However, with their weak bodies, it was difficult for them to get out of bed, let alone sneak out.
MO Ruyue saw that everyone was covering their mouths and noses with a cotton cloth. They were also covered with a strange square box. Their hands were also wrapped in cotton cloth. At their waists hung medicine sachets, mugwort, and Garlic?
She didnt know whether tough or cry. Garlic was indeed something that could kill bacteria, but it looked a little nondescript at the moment.
My Lord.
When the soldiers saw Fan Yi alighting from the carriage, they immediately greeted him.
Alright, where is Doctor Tian? Get him here immediately!
Fan Yi didnt have the mood to make small talk and directly gave an order.
Doctor Tian? Is that Imperial Doctor Tian from Huichun Hall?
MO Ruyue asked in surprise.
If Imperial Doctor Tian was really here, then it would make sense for the doctors in the clinic to be able to make such a swift judgment and treatment.
Oh, right, right. How could I forget? Lady Qin, you were a doctor at Huichun Hall previously. How could you not know Imperial Doctor Tian?
Fan Yi said in realization. This answer was just as MO Ruyue had expected. The person who was treating the patient here was really Imperial Doctor Tian.
This was what it meant to be able to find it without any effort!
However, Imperial Doctor Tian should have been with the Bai family. Why did he appear in Chu City and even stay here?
Could it be that he had seen the epidemic in Chu City, so he had stayed behind with the Bai family? Then where had the Bai family gone?
All sorts of thoughts shed through MO Ruyues mind, but she suppressed them in the end.
All of his questions would be answered after she met Imperial Doctor Tian, so why was she in such a hurry to let her thoughts run wild and disturb her mind?
Soon, footsteps could be hearding from the vige. An old man with white hair was leading the way. He was Imperial Doctor Tian, whom she had not seen for more than a month.
Elder Tian!
MO Ruyue couldnt help but stand up and greet him.
Ruyue, its really you!
Imperial Doctor Tian had heard from the soldiers that the Magistrate had arrived with a beautiful and valiant woman. It was said that her surname was Mo. He had been wondering if it was MO Ruyue. He had not expected to rush over and see that it was indeed MO Ruyue!
He was also overjoyed. However, after taking a few steps, he stopped a distance away.
Ruyue, you must have heard that there was an epidemic in Chu City, so you rushed over, right? The situation here is indeed very serious. I can only temporarily suppress it, but if I want to cure it
He shook his head slightly.
The cleverest housewife could not cook a meal without rice. Some of the rted medicinal herbs for treatment were missing. If they wanted to replenish them, they would have to transfer them from other cities. This would take time.
However, time was what these patientscked the most.
I have the herbs. Elder Tian, Im going to visit the patient now.
MO Ruyue was carrying a medicine box with her. She casually opened the lid of the box and revealed the bottles and jars inside, as well as the various herbs in the middleyer of the box.
Right, how could I forget? Youve already refined a batch of herbal essence? It seemed to be condensed Sigh, Im old. I really cant remember these new things.
Imperial DoctorTian shook his head with a bitter smile.
Actually, it wasnt a matter of his age. It was just that he didnt know what MO Ruyue was talking about.
Hmm, I see that youve also made some protection, but it might not be enough. Put on this set of protective armor first.
MO Ruyue took out a set of onesie that was as thin as a cicadas wing from the medicine box. The material looked ordinary, but in fact, it had been added with a protective film using high-tech technology. It ensured that it was airtight, and at the same time, it also guaranteed an absolutely foolproof protective effect.
Of course, from the outside, it was just an ordinary onesie.
I used alcohol to disinfect it at any time, and I also used wormwood to suffocate it. I heard you say many protective measures before, and I used them one by one, so now it seems that the effect is not bad.
As Imperial Doctor Tian spoke, he sprayed alcohol all over his body again before changing into the onesie.
I saw some soldiers with garlic hanging around their necks. Whats going on?
MO Ruyue could not help but ask.
The smell of garlic can kill bacteria. The soldiers protection is also very simple. Moreover, the disease is transmitted through the mouth and nose. Therefore, I thought that letting them chew garlic in their mouths on top of their masks would also have some protective effect.
This was an extremely simple principle. It could be said that when resources were scarce, it could still be used to deal with them.
Ive brought the poison repellent pill, but the number will be far from enough for all the citizens of Chu City. Now, we can only wait for the protective personnel at important positions toe.
MO Ruyue had actually prepared a considerable amount of protective medicine, but she could not take it all out at once. She could only take it step by step.
As the two of them spoke, they had already finished dressing up and walked all the way to the courtyard where the patients were isted.
The doctor who was initially infected was isted here. After I found out that he entered the mortuary, I immediately gave him medicine. However, it was still a littlete. I could only keep him alive. It was only a matter of time.
This old mans medical skills are not good. Looking at such a huge epidemic, I cant help much. Its really I feel guilty!
A guilty and sad expression appeared on Imperial Doctor Tians face. It was obvious that he was sad that he could not help the person inside..
Chapter 461 - 461: You Were Indeed Planning for a Plan
Chapter 461: You Were Indeed nning for a n
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Elder Tian, you justck the corresponding medicinal herbs. Otherwise, with your ability, how could you not save these patients? Now that Im here, you dont have to worry even more. Rest assured, everything will be fine.
MO Ruyue was naturally confident in her words. Moreover, her words seemed to have a magical power. When Imperial Doctor Tian heard her words, his eyes
With your words, I can rest assured. Im very convinced of your medical skills. Having you is equivalent to having a second life. You will definitely be able to snatch it back from the hands of the King of Hell
He nodded and pushed open the door in front of him. Then, he led MO Ruyue into the courtyard.
Currently, there were a total of 15 patients who had been admitted to the quarantine vige.
Among them, there were three critically ill patients, five critically ill patients, and the rest were patients who had just fallen ill but had very mild symptoms.
These people were separated in different courtyards. Of course, they also maintained a sufficient distance from each other.
MO Ruyue naturally looked at the critically ill patients first. It could be said that these peoples lives had entered the countdown and could bepletely extinguished at any time like a candle in the wind.
This farmhouse was not small, and it was very clean and tidy.
ording to Fan Yi, because it was close to Chu City, this vige was richer than other viges and towns. The living standard of every family in the vige was not low.
However, because of a sudden epidemic, the vige was requisitioned for quarantine. The people who had lived here for generations could only carry gold, silver, and soft goods, drive cattle, sheep, and livestock to seek refuge with rtives and friends, or go to other ces to settle down.
After all, the geographical location of the vige had already determined its use. It was not far away and was suitable for istion. It was also convenient for doctors to treat it.
However, Fan Yi was still a very conscientious magistrate. He had done his best to settle these vigers.
The main house is used to house the patients. I live in the side room here. Imperial Doctor Tian pointed to the side room.
This is the most dangerous ce. Elder Tian, its really not safe for you to live here.
MO Ruyue frowned.
She could understand why Imperial Doctor Tian was staying here. He wanted to stay close to these critically ill patients so that he could rush over in time if anything happened.
Its okay. Ive already prepared the safest protection. As you can see, Ive been living here for a few days now and I havent been infected.
Although Imperial Doctor Tian said that he was fine, he and MO Ruyue knew very well how risky this was. It was all a matter of luck.
Besides, now that youre here, I dont have to worry anymore, right?
His words were indeed on point. Even if MO Ruyue did not have any medical skills, she could still heal these patients with the spiritual spring water in the space.
However, in order to keep her little secret, it was safer to use the ancient prescription in the medical book to make the medicine.
MO Ruyue entered the main room and saw the critically ill patients lying on the bed. They were all breathing heavily and their faces were purple.
The room was filled with an unpleasant smell of decay, as if these people had long been corpses and had even begun to rot.
It seems that their lives areing to an end. I can smell from their breaths that their internal organs have begun to rot.
As she spoke, she exchanged nces with Imperial Docroe Tian and saw the helplessness and regret in his eyes.
Although he had been a doctor for decades and was used to seeing life and death, when he saw some peoples livesing to an end, he could not help but feel a little sad.
MO Ruyue was originally a top-notch assassin. Her profession was to take the lives of others, so she was indifferent to matters of life and death. It was only after she experienced the feeling of having a family after her rebirth that she had a trace of respect for life.
She walked to the bedside and took out a syringe and a small bottle of medicine from the medicine box. She was ready to inject the patients under the skin.
The medicinal water was mixed with diluted spirit spring water. Even if it was only diluted with physiological salt water, it was enough to save these peoples lives.
However, she needed to pay attention to controlling the time they took to recover.
With such a serious illness, it would take at least a week topletely recover. However, even with such a speed, it was enough to shock people.
Is this the special drug you just developed?
Imperial Doctor Tian looked at the potion in the small ss bottle. It was light blue in color, and it was very easy to associate it with the morning sky that was illuminated by the morning light.
Most herbal decoctions were dark brown in color. Sometimes, due to the different ingredients of the herbs, they would even appear a light orange color.
He had never seen such a beautiful light blue color before
Yes, I researched this when I was on the way to the disaster relief.
MO Ruyue admitted without any modesty.
In fact, these things were only fresh for three days. Before she entered the city, she had already begun to prepare for the uing epidemic.
Ruyue, youre indeed nning ahead.
Imperial Doctor Tian did not doubt her words at all. He even felt that it was only right and proper for MO Ruyue to take out any medical equipment or medicine.
Her medical skills were so high that he had never seen one in his life. He could only use the word mysterious to describe it.
But no matter what, having such a person with superb medical skills was a blessing for the country and the people.
After the injection, the breathing of the three critically ill patients gradually became stable. Although they still had various symptoms, at least they no longer had difficulty breathing, and the rotten taste in their mouths had also decreased a lot.
Seeing that their symptoms had eased up, Imperial Doctor Tians originally high heart was also relieved.
As expected, it still depends on you. At least the lives of these critically ill patients are saved. He eximed.
His eyes were filled with gratification and admiration, and there was no trace of jealousy.
Elder Tian, this medicine can only be used for emergencies. We still have to rely on normal medicinal soup for treatment. Besides, there are still so many people in the city. We need an effective prevention method.
MO Ruyue removed the needle and threw it into a bottle of alcohol solution to disinfect it.
There were still more than a dozen patients waiting to be injected.
Fortunately, she had enough spare needles. Otherwise, she would have to rush back to her space to make them.
These needles and needles were all made from the ores that she had traded with Duanmu Xize, the magistrate of Ping City. With this rtionship, she could take out new treatment tools at any time.
Oh right, before that, all the people in the city need to be thoroughly investigated. In the next period of time, Im afraid this vige will be filled with people.
Chu City also needs to be sealed for a period of time. This is the only way to effectively stop the continuous appearance of the infected. I have already discussed this with Sir Fan.
MO Ruyue exined her ns one by one. In fact, these were also mentioned by Imperial Doctor Tian to Fan Yi, but it was not an easy task to implement them.
Now that we can confirm that this is a very powerful epidemic, no matter how much we have to pay, we have to prioritize this matter..
Chapter 462 - 462: The Greatest Peace Of Mind
Chapter 462: The Greatest Peace Of Mind
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
As the two of them spoke, they had already injected the light blue medicine into the remaining patients.
A few patients with mild illnesses even had their fevers go down without any difort.
The effect was immediate.
MO Ruyue had only stayed in the vige for less than two hours before she brought a piece of great news to the magistrate.
What? Those people with mild illnesses have really recovered?
Fan Yi couldnt believe his ears. He stared at MO Ruyue with a burning gaze, afraid that he would hear from her that this was just a joke.
Yes, they have already recovered, but they still need to be isted for observation to prevent the possibility of a rpse.
MO Ruyue gave a definite answer.
If it wasnt for the fact that she didnt want to be too shocking, she would have been able to treat the critically ill patient now.
Good. this is great!
Fan Yi rubbed his hands excitedly.
As expected, she was the Lady Qin who had received The Imperial Courtsmendation and was conferred the title of divine doctor. The moment she arrived, she immediately resolved Chu Citys greatest crisis. It was as if a Bodhisattva had descended to save themon people.
MO Ruyue did not expect that she had already be a Bodhisattva in the eyes of the magistrate. He was just short of burning incense and setting up a memorial tablet to worship her.
Sir, the most important thing now is to seal the city as soon as possible and then conduct a screening of the citizens in the city to screen out those who have been infected as soon as possible.
Then, well find a suitable ce and continue to iste and observe the people who have already recovered. Usually, if theres no rpse in a week or so, there wont be any problems.
MO Ruyue handed a piece of paper to Fan Yi. On it were some things to take note of.
This was what she and Imperial Doctor Tian hade up with when she was giving the patient an injection. She had narrated it, and Imperial Doctor Tian had taken notes.
As long as they followed the instructions, she could guarantee that the entire Chu City would not have to pay a huge price to get through this crisis.
Good, with the example of Lady Qins treatment, I have the confidence to seal the city. Ive already prepared a n for this. Ill go back and start implementing it now.
Fan Yi paused for a moment and looked at MO Ruyue. Will Lady Qin stay here to help Imperial Doctor Tian, or will you go back with me?
Ill stay behind to rece Imperial Doctor Tian. Let him go back with you, Sir
Fan.
How could MO Ruyue possibly leave Imperial Doctor Tian here? Besides, she had other matters to attend to if she stayed behind, so it would save her the trouble of running back and forth between the city and the vige.
Imperial Doctor Tian is the person who helped me record the statement. He knows all my methods very well, so its the same to let him help you seal the city and screen it.
Theres one more thing I need to trouble you with, Sir Fan. Move Imperial
Doctor Tians family to the small courtyard next to my house I see that the courtyard is also being rented out. I will pay the rent in full on his behalf.
Sigh. This is nothing. I will definitely do it well for you. You can just stay here and treat the patients. Leave the rest to me?
MO Ruyue had originally thought that since she had found Imperial Doctor Tian, she would not let his family wander outside. It would be easier to take care of him by her side.
If it wasnt for the fact that there werent enough rooms in the courtyard, she would have wanted him to stay in her courtyard too.
Upon hearing Fan Yis thorough consideration, MO Ruyue nodded and said, Alright, then Ill have to trouble you, Sir Fan.
Soon, Imperial Doctor Tian walked out of the vige empty-handed.
In order to prevent bringing the poison back, he could only choose to throw away everything he brought.
Elder Tian, after you go back, move in next door as we discussed. Youre familiar with Uncle Liu and the others. I also have a foster brother, Deng Feng, whom I met on the way to the disaster relief. Hes a very good person.
If theres anything you need, feel free to look for him. Dont be embarrassed to ask.
MO Ruyue repeated.
She was still a little worried that this old man would be afraid of causing trouble for her. Even if he really had a favor to ask, he would be too embarrassed to ask.
Dont worry, Ruyue. I know now. If I dont say anything, itll be even more troublesome to deal with the aftermath. With you, I dont need to be polite. MO Ruyue smiled when Imperial Doctor Tian said this.
Thats right, think of it this way. If you dont speak up, you wont be able to get me to help you even if you want to. If you dont say anything, youll be treating me as an outsider.
MO Ruyue had such a temper. When she had first met Imperial Doctor Tian, the old man had personally visited her, but she had not been able to plead with him. The treatment she received now waspletely different.
However, that was also because Imperial Doctor Tian had done his best to exchange his heart for hers. What kind of person was MO Ruyue? Did any random cat or dog just have to fawn over her?
That was too cheap.
With Imperial Doctor Tians promise, MO Ruyue finally felt relieved. She cupped her hands in greeting to him and Fan Yi, and watched as the carriage gradually drove away.
She didnt expect that she would have to part with the babies in less than two days.
She had already asked Imperial Doctor Tian to send a message to the babies. She would probably have to wait for the situation here to stabilize before she could return to Chu City.
After sending off Fan Yi and Imperial Doctor Tian, MO Ruyue gathered the soldiers guarding the vige.
She now had the absolute right to speak. It was the right given to her by Fan Yi and also recognized by all the soldiers.
Im going to re-distribute protective equipment to you. At the same time, I have some potions here. If you drink them, you can effectively defend against the epidemic virus.
All the recovered quarantine personnel have recovered their strength. Its possible that theyll slip away, so I need you to be on high alert and patrol the area.
If someone causes the quarantine personnel to escape due to negligence, I will punish them directly with militaryw. I wont listen to any reason.
MO Ruyue had said this to prevent such consequences from happening. Just as Imperial Doctor Tian had said, dealing with the aftermath was a very troublesome matter.
Yes, please rest assured, Lady Qin. We will not fail our mission!
The soldiers said in unison.
They had been guarding this ce for a few days, and almost every moment was spent in fear.
Although they couldnt express their fear because of their identities, they were still very ordinary people. When faced with the threat of death, they would also feel fear.
However, this Lady Qin had cured a patient with a mild illness the moment she arrived. This was simply the greatest reassurance for them. Even if they were really infected, they would not die.
With this knowledge, they could be said to have no scruples. Very good. Now, drink the potion and go back to your duties.
Mo Ruyue waved her hand. There was nothing much she could do right now.
She just had to observe the critically ill patients and ensure that they did not suffer any major rpse.
She could also collect some data samples for future research.
While MO Ruyue was busy collecting the specimens, Gu Ying had already arrived at an inconspicuous small county a hundred miles away.
The town was too small.
It was less than a hundred meters from the beginning to the end. A small path ran from end to end, and the end could be seen at a nce.
It was more like a vige than a town..
Chapter 463 - 463: Special Whistle
Chapter 463: Special Whistle
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gu Ying stopped here because the giant wolf that was following him in the dark had sent him a message.
It smelled the scent of the Bai family.
He ced the giant wolf in the forest outside and let it hunt freely. Gu Ying led Little ck into the town slowly.
This ce was further north from Chu City, and it was not on any major traffic arteries. The entire town seemed a little deste.
Fortunately, it was the busy season for spring plowing, so there was arge area of farnd outside the town.
The crops that had been sown in time for spring plowing had already produced green seedlings in a few days.
It was close to evening, and the people who were busy farming in the fields had already finished work and gone home. The entire town was filled with smoke, and it looked especially peaceful and peaceful.
Gu Ying walked to the door of the only inn in the town. He looked at the sign on the door that said it was closed and knocked on the door a few times.
Who is it!
Soon, footsteps came from the room.
Shopkeeper, I was just passing by and missed the inn in front. I heard that there was an inn here, so I rushed over. Open the door.
Gu Ying said in a deep voice.
Before he reunited with MO Ruyue, he might not even be able to say a word for ten days to half a month.
Now that he was by MO Ruyues side, he was starting to show signs of being talkative.
The wooden door creaked open, and a man in coarse blue clothes stood at the door. He immediately greeted Gu Ying warmly when he saw him.
Aiya, Customer, where did youe from? Looking at your travel-worn body, you must have walked a long way. Pleasee in!
As he spoke, he was about to take Little cks reins, but the tall ck horse breathed a warm breath, scaring him so much that he almost fell back. Let me do it. This old friend of mine doesnt like to be touched by strangers.
Gu Ying refused his help. He held Little cks hand and followed behind the waiter. They went around the wall and entered through the back door.
After cing Little ck in the stable and feeding him with water and fodder, he walked to the house in front of him and began to register.
The room fee for a day is five copper coins. It includes three meals, as well as the cost of feeding and taking care of the horses.
That room is already the best single room here. Theres also a hot water supply. The rest are basicallyrgemon beds. After all, we rarely have peopleing here. Even if theye, theyre all small caravans or something.
I dont think youre the type to stay in a shared room, so I took the initiative to choose that single room for you. Please dont be angry.
The waiter was apologetic.
It was rare for him to meet a customer. In addition, there was a natural disaster some time ago, and the caravans from the south stopped all of a sudden. The already bleak business was even worse.
Five wens might not be much in the eyes of others, but for people like them who did small businesses, it was enough to save for half a month.
Yes, that one.
Gu Ying took out a piece of silver from his pocket and pushed it forward on the table.
Keep the change. I might stay for a few more days. Ill settle the bill when I leave.
The reason why he stopped here was to find the clues left behind by the Bai family.
At first) he and MO Ruyue had only guessed that something had happened to the Bai Family. However, after finding clues in such a remote town, Gu Ying could basically confirm that something had happened.
No matter how the Bai family hid from the world to avoid disaster, they still opened a restaurant in the county town and lived a wealthy life without worrying about food and clothing. It did not affect their lives.
But now, they had abandoned the peaceful Chu City and tried to go to remote ces instead.
This was not as simple as an ident, but something big had happened.
Families like the Bai family had their own set of mature mechanisms to avoid disasters. Once the conditions for triggering the mechanism were met, they would immediately split up and act separately.
A single target was too big, so it was best to separate them out. Once they merged into themon people, it would be difficult to distinguish them one by one.
Gu Ying took the room card and key from the waiter. He refused dinner and returned to his room after getting hot water.
This inn had two floors. The first floor was the dining hall and shared beds, while the second floor was the individual guest rooms.
The room Gu Ying was in was the second room around the corner on the second floor. It was just right on the street.
He had brought along the dry rations that MO Ruyue had prepared, which were stored in another miniature capsule. They were much more delicious than the food cooked in a small rural restaurant.
Soon, there was another knock on the door. It was the waiter who came to bring hot water.
Gu Ying gave him an extra tip and told him that he didnt need anything else tonight. The waiter understood and went away with the tip in his hand. After washing his hands and face in a hurry, Gu Ying opened the miniature
capsule ording to MO Ruyues demonstration.
He remembered that there was a very famous Japanese manga in the past, which had the usage of the miniature capsule.
Not only could it store food and medicine, but it could also store vehicles, small houses, and so on.
With just a few small capsules, he could bring his home with him at any time. It was simply too convenient.
However, MO Ruyues research had limited space. It was only about three times three cubic meters.
It was more than enough to store some clothes, medicine, and food, but it was far from enough to put them in carriages, houses, and so on.
He opened the capsule containing the food. There was a small refrigerator, a set of simple military cooking utensils, and a microwave.
As for the power supply, it was a few sr cells.
As long as it was exposed to the sun on a sunny day and umted enough sr energy, the electricity stored in it could even support a small field hospital.
MO Ruyue had already filled the refrigerator with food in advance and sealed it in a vacuum bag so that it could be stored for a long time.
Gu Ying opened a bag of mixed fruits, vegetables, and meat. He quickly heated it up in the microwave and wolfed it down.
The sky outside was getting darker and darker. After Gu Ying had eaten his fill and rested for a while, he opened the window facing the street and nimbly climbed out.
Since they were going to hide in the world, the Bai family wouldnt show up with great fanfare.
If the giant wolf had not detected the scent left behind by the Bai family, even Gu Ying would have missed this clue.
His figure was as swift as a ghost, silently passing through the small town and dashing toward the forest outside.
The giant wolf, which had also eaten and drunk its fill, was waiting for him at the foot of the mountain. If he wanted to find the Bai family, he would have to rely on this old friends help.
Lets go. Its time for you to show off your skills.
Gu Ying muttered.
Gu Ying and the wolf quickly blended into the night and disappeared into the vast mountains.
Gu Ying followed behind the giant wolf and watched it bring him all the way into the mountains.
It was likely that some members of the Bai family had entered the mountains directly. However, it was still unknown how many people had passed through this ce and how many resources they had brought with them. It was also unknown if they couldst until the end.
He held a special whistle in his hand.
This was a specialmunication post that the Bai family had given to MO Ruyue..
Chapter 464 - 464: I’ve Finally Been Waiting For You!
Chapter 464: Ive Finally Been Waiting For You!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue had tested this whistle in her space. It could emit a whistle sound with a special frequency, which could be sensed by the Bai familys specially reared whistle ves.
This is the safest method ofmunication. As long as we dont lose the sentry ve, no one will find out that someone is sending messages right under their noses.
After receiving the test results, MO Ruyue had praised this contact post.
Although MO Ruyue had gotten the contact post, she had rejected the post ve.
As a person who hid a huge secret, she was not used to letting a stranger follow by her side, especially a stranger who was loyal to another family. Even if she had a very close rtionship with this family, it would not do.
Other than Gu Ying, no one knew the true secret of this space.
Even Aunt Liu and her babies only knew that they would be in an unfamiliar environment and could move with MO Ruyue.
They had no idea about the super technology that was hundreds of thousands of years ahead of them.
As MO Ruyues most trusted person, Gu Ying was also assigned a post.
Although he didnt bring the sentry ve with him, he just needed to find a fixed ce to stop, send a secret signal, and then tell them his location. Then, he would wait for the Bai family toe.
If the whistle could be heard, even if the hidden password wasplicated enough, there was still a risk of being leaked.
However, only those sentry ves who had undergone special training over the years could hear such an inaudible frequency. This was something that most people could not learn.
After Gu Ying ran for the time it takes for an incense stick to burn, he was already very far into the forest. Only then did he call the giant wolf to stop.
Lets do it here.
The smell here was already so faint that it could not be smelled. Since just now, the giant wolf had stopped frequently and raised its head to carefully distinguish the smell in the air.
He had to confirm it several times before continuing.
Therefore, he made a prompt decision to stop. This was to prevent the giant wolf from being confused by the smell and eventually losing its way.
Gu Ying took out the contact whistle and blew on it.
The giant wolf suddenly jumped up and circled around him in extreme unease.
The five senses of animals were far superior to humans, especially carnivorous beasts.
The giant wolf must have heard the ear-piercing ultrasonic waves and was extremely sensitive to such sounds, which was why it was extremely anxious.
Stay away from here. Dont wander around here. When Im done here, Ill naturallye to find you.
Gu Ying said to the giant wolf.
Ever since these wolves had stayed in MO Ruyues space for a long time, they had be more and more human-like. They could hear them speak more and more.
Other than not being able tomunicate with them in humannguage, they were almost the same as humans.
The giant wolf nodded at his words and turned around to run back.
It knew very well that after Gu Ying was done here, he would still have to return to the town, so the simplest way was to wait on the road that led to the town.
He would definitely be able to wait for this human!
After Gu Ying confirmed that the giant wolf was far away, he blew the whistle again.
The range of the whistle could be transmitted far away, at least within a radius of ten miles.
He followed the method taught by the Bai family and first matched the secret code to prove his identity.
Then, he found a ce with very obvious geographical features and transmitted the location of this ce.
Next, all he could do was wait patiently.
Although it was already the season of spring, the temperature in the mountains in the north could still plummet to a single digit after nightfall. However, such a low temperature did not seem to affect Gu Ying at all.
The nts on the hillside and in the forest had already sprouted green leaves, and the moisture and oil on the branches had alsoe out, wrapping around the branches that had been dry for the entire winter.
It was not easy to light a fire under such circumstances.
Gu Ying had no intention of lighting a bonfire to keep warm. Although they were deep in the mountains, there was already a danger of being exposed.
He could go to another ce at any time, but for the Bai family, it was not easy to find a suitable ce to stay.
While waiting, Gu Ying took out a small bottle of white wine.
This was not the white wine sold in the market in this space-time. It was brewed by MO Ruyue using the grains grown in the space and then fermented by the time elerator.
He found a clean big rock and sat cross-legged on it. After drinking a mouthful of white wine, his body suddenly became hot. Good wine! Bing Ers cooking is getting better and better!
Gu Ying could not help but praise.
In fact, MO Ruyue had found an ancient wine recipe in the library.
On this basis, after her improvement and sufficient fermentation time, she finally obtained the finished white wine.
It was not the first time Gu Ying drank it. On the night he reunited with MO Ruyue, he was attracted by the familiar fragrance of the wine and was lured to the room where she was waiting for him.
After that, he began his journey of enjoying good wine and good food.
The jar of wine in his hand had reced his favorite wine in the past and had be his new favorite.
Gu Ying was not a person who liked new things and hated old things, but his obsession with wine allowed him to switch his favorite in a second.
Fortunately, your attitude toward rtionships is not like this. Otherwise, I would personally kill the scumbag.
MO Ruyue had once said this half-jokingly and half-seriously.
Gu Ying also believed that she was speaking the truth. If she was also a sea queen, she would kill him first before ending her own life.
Fortunately, there was only love between them. In the future, there would always be only love. There was absolutely no killing.
As he drank, he was lost in thought.
While he was in a trance, he heard the sound of hurried footstepsing from the wind.
You came very quickly.
Gu Ying drank another mouthful of wine and then stood up from the big rock.
In the forest in the distance, there was a figure moving, and then there was the clear cry of a partridges.
Its me. Theres no one else. Dont worry ande out.
Gu Ying said loudly.
Then, two people slowly walked out of the forest. They were unfamiliar faces that Gu Ying had never seen before.
That person walked forward and asked cautiously, Young Master Ying, its really you. Is Lady Qin here too?
She has other matters to attend to. Who is your leader? Take me to him.
Gu Ying said simply. The person immediately nodded and said, Young Master Ying, please follow me.
The group of people sprinted at full speed in the night. Soon, Gu Ying crossed two mountains and arrived at an extremely hidden cave entrance.
There was no torch at the entrance of the cave. A person was standing there and walking back and forth. When he heard a sound, he immediately looked over.
Is it Young Master Ying? Ive waited for you!
The one who spoke was the young master of the Bai family, Bai Shiyuan.
Young Master Bai, what exactly happened to the Bai family? Why did you retreat to this deep mountain?
Gu Ying asked directly.
Its a long story. Lets go into the cave and talk slowly..
Chapter 465 - 465: Leave It To Me
Chapter 465: Leave It To Me
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Bai Shiyuan weed Gu Ying into the cave.
The entrance of the cave looked unremarkable, and the path leading inside was extremely narrow. However, after turning a few corners, the inside suddenly opened up. It was actually a different world.
The cave was littered with ever-burningmps. The fuse inside was a strange dried fish. It was drawn into the grease below with cotton thread, and the mes were burning brightly.
It could be seen that this ce had been operated and maintained for a long time. Although it was deep in the mountains, the cave did not feel cold and humid at all.
Along the way, he could see servants and maidservants shuttling back and forth, holding utensils, cleaning tools, and other items in their hands. Other than the fact that the surrounding caveyout looked a little out of ce, it gave people the feeling that they were still in a deep courtyard.
Bai Shiyuan led Gu Ying to a secret room. Judging from theyout, it should be a study room.
Young Master Ying, please sit.
As he spoke, a servant served tea. Just by smelling it, one could tell that it was high-quality Longjing tea.
It seemed that even during their escape, the Bai familys standard of living had not fallen.
Just now I heard the news from the sentry ve that Young Master Ying hade. You dont know how excited I was. It has been more than a month since west met.
Although I dont know how the two of you are doing, my Bai familys current situation is indeed not good.
Bai Shiyuan said with a bitter smile, the worry in his eyes never dissipating.
Bing Er said that something must have happened since you didnt show up in Chu City, so she asked me toe out and see if I could find you.
Gu Ying also briefly exined his intentions and said, I also want to know where Imperial Doctor Tian and Mr. Du are.
Imperial Doctor Tian is in Chu City. He said that its one of the main traffic routes to the north. Moreover, there will definitely be a major epidemic after the disaster. As long as we hold Chu City, we can effectively prevent the epidemic from spreading north.
Therefore, ording to his request, I left him in Chu City and left him with quite a lot of money and resources. If nothing unexpected happens, Lady Qin should be able to see him very soon.
As for Mr. Du, he continued to go north. You also know that our Bai familys background is deeply feared by The Imperial Court. Its fine if nothing happens, but once something happens, its a big deal. Therefore, it will be dangerous for Mr. Du to follow us.
I heard that Mr. Du also has properties in the capital) so I sent someone to escort Mr. Du over safely. It can be considered that I didnt let down Lady Qins trust.
Bai Shiyuan finished exining the whereabouts of the two of them in one breath before picking up his teacup and taking a sip.
I see. It seems that I want to bring Mr. Du back to Bing Er and continue to chase north.
Gu Ying didnt look troubled. As long as he had a clue, he would bring him back to MO Ruyue no matter how far she was.
Is Lady Qin looking for Mr. Du? May I know why?
Bai Shiyuan asked curiously. After asking, heughed at himself.
Look at me, this is Lady Qins private matter. I cant even take care of myself now, how can I have the leisure to pry into other peoples business.
The babies havent been able to enter school steadily yet. Bing Er thought that perhaps she could ask Mr. Du if he was willing to be the babies teacher again.
Gu Ying actually answered all the questions. This was too different from his usual taciturn image. Bai Shiyuan was surprised and could not help but take a few more nces at him.
Now, tell me what kind of trouble the Bai family is.
Gu Ying asked again.
He could understand Bai Shiyuans worries. He wanted them to lend a helping hand, but he also felt that the implications were too great and he could not implicate them.
However, in his and MO Ruyues eyes, it was not a big deal as long as it did not affect the safety of the babies.
The two of them were fearless masters, so how could they care that the Bai family had offended the royal family?
In the end, Bai Shiyuan still told them all about his familys troubles. Even if Lady Qin was only a divine doctor, Gu Ying was definitely the top elite among the assassins.
He was someone that even the Xiao family wanted to rope in. One could see how terrifying his ability was.
Although it was not enough to go against the entire country, what if the Bai familys financial resources and manpower were added?
Unless it was absolutely necessary, the Bai family would never consider thest step.
However, even a rabbit would bite when it was anxious.
Gu Ying listened quietly and finally had a concrete understanding of the Bai familys current situation.
So now, Master Bai is responsible for covering the rear and dealing with the pressure from above. As for you, Young Master Bai, you have to send your family safely through the blockade line and to the safest fortress that you have prepared, right?
He briefly exined the division ofbor between father and son.
Thats right. The Imperial Court did not set up any defenses in Chu City. Although this ce is also an important traffic route, the information they received was wrong. They thought that we had already passed through in advance.
Right now, the defense line is set up in another hub city a hundred miles away, and its heavily guarded. This time, we cant get past it no matter what. I had no choice but to bring my family into the mountains.
What youre seeing now is a temporary shelter that the Bai familys ancestors have been preparing. The supplies stored inside can support a hundred people for half a year.
There are at least ten fallout shelters like this from the south to the north, but four of them have been destroyed for various reasons.
Bai Shiyuan told him everything he knew about such a confidential matter because he knew that even if he did not say anything, Gu Ying would still be able to find out.
Once he was found to be lying, the foundation of trust would be on the verge of copse. To the Bai family, the gains would not make up for the losses. No wonder. This cave is warm and dry. Its definitely not something that can be achieved overnight.
Gu Ying nodded.
It seemed that the feud between the Bai family and the royal family hadsted for a long time. It was actually Bai Shiyuans ancestors who had started to set up these fallout shelters.
The current one alone would not be able to hold on for long without huge financial support.
This also proved from another perspective that the true strength of the Bai family was truly unfathomable.
Your wish is to send your family safely to the safest fortress, right?
Gu Ying pondered for a while and said proudly, Its not difficult. Leave it to me.
Really, Young Master Ying? This, this is great!
Bai Shiyuan could not believe it. What he thought was extremely difficult could be said so easily by Gu Ying.
I wont promise something I cant do.
If someone else had said this, Gu Ying might have felt offended. However, what Bai Shiyuan said was indeed extremely difficult. It was normal for him to
have doubts.
Then, whatever Young Master Ying needs me to do now, just tell me. Everyone in the Bai Family is at your disposal!
Bai Shiyuan could not wait any longer.
As long as the family of the Bai family reached the fortress, he and his father would no longer have to worry about anything.
Even if he had to pay a greater price to go into hiding again and wait for his grandson to slowly appear, it did not matter.
The Bai family could withstand such losses and wait. As long as they could continue the bloodline of the family, everything was worth it..
Chapter 466 - 466: The Joy of Reunion
Chapter 466: The Joy of Reunion
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
I think this ce is still very safe. You guys can temporarily calm down and wait for the news here. Im going to find Du Zhongheng first. Ill also send a message to Bing Er about you guys.
Gu Ying immediately made a decision.
His first task was to find Du Zhongheng and help the Bai family solve the problem.
Its only right. The babies are all extremely intelligent and cute children. Its a big deal to dy their studies. Young Master Ying, you should go and settle your business first. Even if we were to stay here for a year or so, it wouldnt be a problem.
Bai Shiyuan immediately said generously.
However, neither MO Ruyue nor Gu Ying would make him wait for a year and a half. He was merely doing them a favor by saying so.
After receiving my message, Bing Er will probablye to see you soon. You can discuss it first then. Ill be leaving first.
GuYing stood up and was about to leave when he was stopped by Bai Shiyuan.
Young Master Ying, please wait a moment. I have something to give you.
As he spoke, he walked out of the study and returned after about the time it takes for an incense stick to burn.
Before escaping from the county city, I transferred all the wealth that Lady Qin received in time to thergest money house in this dynasty. This is the token to receive it. No matter which city you are in, you can use this to receive it.
I believe that Young Master has already guessed that there are shares of the Bai family in that bank. Its just that its under the guise of someone elses identity. Even if His Majesty personallyes to investigate, he wont be able to find out.
He said it confidently and was obviously very confident about this matter.
Gu Ying took the token. He had heard MO Ruyue mention this before. It was said that the amount of wealth was even more than what he could extract from his tourmaline ring.
No, he had to make money as soon as possible. Otherwise, if he did not have as much money as his wife, wouldnt he be a gigolo?
He held the token tightly in his hand and made a decision in his heart.
By the time he came out of the cave, it was already an hourter.
Gu Ying looked up at the sky. It had been more than two hours since he left the town.
It was time to go back. He had to pass the news to MO Ruyue first, and then he would continue on his way to chase after Du Zhongheng.
He originally wanted to stay in the town for two more days, but now it seemed that there was no need.
At the intersection that was about to reach the town, a huge wolf was lying on the side of the road. When it saw Gu Ying appear, it immediately stood up and weed him.
Good job. Youre waiting for me here.
Gu Ying smiled and patted the wolfs neck.
I need you to bring something back. Give it to Bing Er and then catch up with me.
Awoo!
The giant wolf nodded, indicating that it understood.
Gu Ying stuffed the note he had written beforehand into a cor box and fastened it around the giant wolfs neck.
After confirming that the cor was fastened, Gu Ying patted the giant wolfs head.
Go ahead.
As he spoke, the giant wolf rushed out like an arrow and quickly disappeared into the night.
Gu Ying returned to the inn in the small town and quietly sneaked into his room. He quickly washed up andy down.
He wasnt sleepy at the moment. Instead, he was thinking about what Bai Shiyuan had said.
The Bai familys current crisis could be said to be unprecedented. In the past, The Imperial Court had surrounded them, and now, there was a traitor. It was not an exaggeration to say that they were struggling.
If Bing Er got the news, she would rush over immediately.
Once she decided who her family and friends were, she would do her best to protect them under her wings.
The Bai family was too big. It was not easy topletely protect the master.
Although Bai Shiyuan had sessfully brought his family to this refuge deep in the mountains, he had also lost contact with Old Master Bai.
The final news that came from the other side was that Master Bai was preparing to go the opposite way and head south again.
After that, the sentry ve was inexplicably killed, and there was no new news from then on.
The south was a scene of the apocalypse after the disaster.
However, it was probably the best choice for Old Master Bai now.
The Imperial Court was busy with disaster relief. If they wanted topletely annihte the remaining Bai family members, they would have to involve too many people. At that time, they would probably be implicated by the disaster.
They were all leaders ofrge families. The decisions they made at the critical moment were indeed unimaginable to ordinary people.
He just kept his eyes open until the sky was slightly bright. There was already some movement in the inn, so he got up and went out.
Hey, Customer, youre up so early?
The waiter asked in surprise when he saw GuYing leave.
Yes, Im leaving. Lets settle the bill.
What? Didnt you say that you still have to stay in town for a few days? Why are you leaving now?
The shop assistant originally thought that it would be good to earn an extra five wen. He did not expect that he would only earn five wen from thest piece of silver.
Something came up at thest minute, so I had to prepare to leave. Theres no need to prepare breakfast. Ill leave now.
Gu Ying said as he walked toward the backyard.
Other than him, no stranger could lead Little ck away, so he had to go to the backyard to lead the horse.
Just as he was leading the horse out of the back door, he heard a waiter shouting from behind.
Customer, Customer, your money, your change!
The waiter held a handful of money in his hand and ran over in a hurry.
No need. This is a tip for you.
As Gu Ying said that, he mounted his horse with one leg and mped the horses belly. Little ck neighed and rushed out.
What? Sigh Sir!
Before the waiter could react, Gu Ying and his horse had already gone far away.
He lowered his head and looked at the copper coins in his palm. It was so full that he almost needed two hands to hold it.
So This money was the tip that the guest gave him?
Thats more than ten days worth of room rent!
When the waiter looked up again, his eyes were already red.
A good person, he really met a good person!
When the waiter returned to the inn with tears of gratitude, Gu Ying had already left the town.
Although there was no giant wolf by his side, he could only rely on his scent to track him.
However, with Bai Shiyuans information, it was only a matter of time before they found Du Zhongheng.
Chu Citys investigation quickly began in an orderly manner.
With the county magistrates strong support, as well as the volunteers who had undergone simple training and Imperial Doctor Tians supervision, the entire investigation went very smoothly.
When the babies found out that MO Ruyue had stayed in the quarantine area again, they couldnt help but worry even though they were confident in her abilities.
They once again regretted urging their mother to save people. That was why he had embarked on the path of medicine that was filled with trouble and trouble.
The arrival of Imperial Doctor Tian filled the hearts of the babies with the joy of reunion.
It would be even better if Mr. Du coulde back soon.
In order to let MO Ruyue treat the patients in peace and not be distracted by family matters, Magistrate Fan Yi had specially assigned two soldiers to guard the small courtyard she rented.
By forbidding anyone from approaching the small courtyard, it also eliminated the possibility of the gue spreading.
MO Ruyue smiled when she heard the news. She did not reveal that the babies physiques were no longer the same as before. Moreover, she had left behind diluted spirit spring water.
After drinking a tube of water, the disease was cured..
Chapter 467 - 467: Inform
Chapter 467: Inform
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Although the investigation was progressing smoothly, it was inevitable that there would be discordant voices.
Some of the rich families in the city were used to beingzy and did not want to queue with themoners.
Whenever they went out, they would be surrounded by people and horses. It was even moremon to cut in line. It was inevitable that conflicts would arise.
In addition, some of the refugees had no way to survive for a long time. Some people took advantage of the situation to fish in troubled waters. They either took the gold and silver of others or wanted to take advantage of a youngdy in order to be a son-inw.
Fan Yi listened to Imperial Doctor Tians suggestion and used his thunderous methods.
Anyone who did not cooperate with the investigation and caused trouble, regardless of whether they were rich or poor, would be dealt with severely.
In an instant, a few heads fell to the ground. They were all unlucky enough to be caught in the storm.
They were sentenced on the spot and sent to meet the King of Hell on the spot.
With such intimidation, no one dared to stir up trouble anymore. Each and every one of them shrank their heads and tucked their tails between their legs.
Even thendlord merchants who boasted of their good rtionship with Fan Yi did not dare to provoke his current temper.
After MO Ruyue learned of this, she pped her hands and said with a smile, Thats right. Extraordinary times call for extraordinary things. We need to use heavy punishment to deter those scoundrels from the ghost realm.
It is also because of Sir Fans kindness. If it were me, I would have sent a batch of people away before the epidemic imed their lives.
Her words sounded like a joke, but only Imperial Doctor Tian knew how true her words were.
Thinking back to how she had dealt with those who had gone against her,
Imperial Doctor Tian could not help but rejoice that he had agreed to MO
Ruyues request to stay behind in the quarantine vige.
To put it bluntly, this decision had saved a group of peoples lives.
Everything was in order in Chu City, and the neighboring vige was also peaceful.
After the first round of investigation, another ten people were diagnosed and sent to the quarantine vige.
The vige that had taken in undiagnosed secret contacts had also been vacated and people were being taken in one after another. Once someone had symptoms, they would be sent to the quarantine vige.
However, to MO Ruyue, this was just a formality.
The patients with mild illnesses would recover immediately after being injected with her medicine. The water that those who were in close contact with her drank had been diluted by her spiritual spring water, so there was no possibility of infection.
However, the process still had to be done, and the acting had to be realistic so that it would not arouse suspicion.
MO Ruyue came out of the space again and filled up the empty bottle.
The epidemic in Chu City was discovered early and dealt with early. In her opinion, it would bepletely under control in a few more days.
The most important thing was that the county magistrate Fan Yi resolutely withstood the pressure from the two of them and directly sealed the city gate.
No one was allowed to enter or leave.
This first eliminated the source of infection from the outside, and also prevented the possible source of infection from escaping from the city.
The source was blocked in both directions, and only this pool of water was left. How much wind and waves could it cause?
Not to mention, MO Ruyue had also provided him with a special preventive medicine. The terrifying epidemic that could have killed arge number of people in the south was like a docile little sheep in Chu City. It was no longer a threat.
Suddenly, a wolf howl came from outside the vige, alerting the soldiers guarding the vige.
When MO Ruyue heard the familiar voice, she immediately realized that it was the giant wolf that Gu Ying had taken away.
Just as she walked out of the courtyard, she saw a soldier running over in a hurry.
Dont worry, Lady Qin. Us brothers have already gone to check everywhere. We will definitely guard it strictly and not let that beast outside have the chance to enter the vige and hurt people.
It doesnt matter. Its spring now. Even the hungry wolves in the mountains have prey to eat. They are smart. Unless they will starve to death, they will not easily risk being killed to enter the vige.
You all rest in peace. Ill go take a look.
How could she let these soldiers take the risk? Of course, she could not let the giant wolf be in danger as well.
One had to know that the wolfs body was even bigger than a half-grown buffalo. If anyone saw it, they would be scared out of their wits.
Lady Qin, are you going out?
The soldier asked in surprise.
Which youngdy didnt hide in fear when she heard the wolfs howl, but this one in front of him still wanted to go out.
Wasnt she afraid of being bitten by a wolf?
Yes, dont worry. Ill be fine. Even if dozens of wolvese, they wont be my match.
MO Ruyue said confidently.
Although she was speaking the truth, to the soldiers, it was obvious that she was bragging.
Even the most experienced hunter would not dare to say that he would not be at a disadvantage when facing dozens of wolves alone. It would be good enough if he was not bitten into pieces.
However, he did not dare to say such offensive words.
It was said that thisdy also had some martial arts skills. Moreover, from the sound of the wolfs howl, it was like a lone wolf. Moreover, it was far away from the vige, so there should be no problem.
Why dont I go out with you? Ill see if you want to rx or dig up some herbs. At least with someone by your side, you wont be afraid even if you encounter wolves.
The soldier sincerely rmended himself.
He was really afraid that something would happen to MO Ruyue. Not to mention whether the magistrate would me him, even hisrades would not let him off easily.
After witnessing thisdys miraculous medical skills, who wouldnt want to build a good rtionship with her? They hoped that if they ever needed her help in the future, they wouldnt be rejected.
Of course, MO Ruyue rejected this suggestion.
How could she receive Gu Yings message with a follower?
Under her insistence, the soldier could only give up the idea of apanying her and return to his sentry post resentfully.
MO Ruyue left the vige openly with a basket on her elbow. She pretended to be ready to pick herbs and walked into the distance under the eyes of the soldiers.
MO Ruyue only stopped when the soldiers could no longer see her.
Not long after, a huge wolf appeared beside her, shaking its head and wagging its tail coquettishly, appearing extremely affectionate.
She took out a huge piece of raw meat from her space and threw it to the giant wolf. It immediately wolfed down the meat.
MO Ruyue took off the cor around its neck and took out a piece of paper from the box.
After reading them all, her expression became solemn.
The matter of the Bai family is indeed a little troublesome.
In MO Ruyues dictionary, there was nothing impossible. Of course, there was nothing she could do.
Even if she had offended the power of a country, she had done such a thing before.
In the past, subverting a countrys political power was no different from eating cabbage and drinking cold water to her.
Those who were disobedient could be killed. It was not difficult to choose an obedient person from the crowd who wanted to be promoted.
Although they were in a different time and space now, it was still the same old thing.
It was said that the old emperor sitting in the court did not have a particrly good reputation.
It would be best if she did not step on his thunder spot. Otherwise, it should not be difficult to change the dynasty.
After reading it, she brought the giant wolf back to her space and wrote a letter to Gu Ying.
Master Bai had gone to the south again, and there was a high chance that he would bump into the prince in charge of disaster relief. When that happened, enemies would meet on a narrow road, and it would be easy for something to happen.
It seemed that she still had to make this trip. She couldnt just watch Old Master Bai die.
The impression she had of the little old man was that he was extremely righteous and a warm-hearted person. She was very confident that she would not be wrong about this..
Chapter 468 - 468: Is Mother Leaving Again?
Chapter 468: Is Mother Leaving Again?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
In her reply to Gu Ying, MO Ruyue told him to catch up with Du Zhongheng as soon as possible. Regardless of whether he would follow him back or not, he had to return to Chu City as soon as possible.
With Fan Yi taking care of the babies lives and Imperial Doctor Tians family by her side, she could rest assured and chase after Old Master Bai.
As for Bai Shiyuan, he would wait to meet up with Old Master Bai. Then, they would go through the heavily guarded checkpoint together, saving him the trouble of going through the second round of procedures.
After writing the reply, the giant wolf also ate up therge piece of flesh and drank tworge basins of water before it was full.
MO Ruyue did not leave the space immediately. Instead, she adjusted the flow of time and let the giant wolf y with the pack of wolves for a while. When it was almost digested, she let it out of the space and let it go back to chase Gu Ying.
I dont know where Old Master Bai is in the south now. He wants to confuse the eyes and ears of the court, so he wont drive straight down. With the time he has to beat around the bush, its enough for me to catch up.
The epidemic here has basically been controlled. With Imperial Doctor Tian here, Ill leave enough herbs behind, so theres no need for me to stay here to guard. Besides, I can also find an excuse to go south to save people and leave. Alright, lets do that. Lets not dy any further. Lees begin.
MO Ruyue quickly confirmed her next n and returned to the quarantine vige with a basket full of herbs.
Lady Qin, youre finally back.
The soldier who had reported to her was the sentry at the entrance. He heaved a sign of relief when ne saw MO Ruyue return.
Thank you for worrying about me. Dont worry, I know my limits.
MO Ruyue said with a smile and went back to the courtyard to brew medicine.
Early the next morning, a soldier rode back to Chu City with MO Ruyues handwritten letter and personally handed it to Fan Yi.
Imperial Doctor Tian,e and take a look. Lady Qin said that she identally discovered a kind of herb that has a miraculous effect on treating this epidemic. Moreover, the few critically ill patients in the quarantine vige have all been out of danger.
Thats great! Thats really great! In that case, wont the epidemic be under control soon?
Fan Yi was overjoyed when he saw the letter.
He was also under great pressure when he sealed the city. After all, although Chu City was not a huge city, its geographical location was too special.
Now, it was not only the people and disaster victims in and out of the city who had been sealed, but they did not dare to say anything because of his thunderous methods.
Even the neighboring cities in the north and south had sent letters several times, urging him to open the city gates quickly and let the merchants travel.
Now that MO Ruyue had brought him the news that the herbs were effective, it had undoubtedly reassured him.
What the gue feared the most was that there was no cure.
In addition to the terrifying infection and mortality rate, in a situation where there was no cure, it was simply a situation where the entire city died.
One city was nothing, but what about five or ten?
What about spreading across the whole country?
Who could bear this responsibility?
Fan Yis shoulders were too small. He really couldnt carry such a big pot.
Congrattions, Milord, for being able to obtain Lady Qins full support at such a critical moment. I have to say, the heavens really bless the people of Chu City and the people of our dynasty!
Although Imperial Doctor Tian had long known that with MO Ruyue around, the gue would definitely be under control, he was still filled with emotions when he heard the news.
Up until now, other than a few people who had died when the situation was still unknown, after MO Ruyue took over, there hadnt been any more cases of critical illness. It was even more impossible for anyone to die.
If he was the one to treat this situation, some people would die if the herbs were not in ce. However, even if the herbs were in ce, there was no guarantee that he could save every critically ill patient.
This was the difference between him and MO Ruyue.
To her, treating illnesses was as simple as drinking water and eating vegetables. It was unknown where her mysterious medical skills came from, but it was ultimately a blessing for the people.
Oh right, Lady Qin also said that she will be heading south in a few days. The epidemic there is even more serious, and she cant sit idly by. Imperial Doctor Tian, she also entrusted us to help take care of her children.
Leave this matter to me. As long as we can get through this cmity, I will do my best to let Lady Qin not have the slightest worry.
I hope Imperial Doctor Tian can testify for me when I swear today.
Good. I will thank you on behalf of Ruyue for your kind intentions. Originally, this old man also had the intention to go south, but I dont think she would agree to bring this old man along.
She is free toe and go alone. She will have all kinds of concerns and inconveniences when she brings me along. After thinking about it, I can only help her take care of her family. It can be considered as me doing my part.
Imperial Doctor Tian understood MO Ruyues personality all too well. She even felt that it was inappropriate for him to stay in the quarantine vige, so how could she agree to his request to follow her to the south?
After the two finished their discussion, they went their separate ways.
Fan Yi continued to supervise the tidying up of the search while Imperial Doctor Tian boarded the carriage and headed straight for the MO familys courtyard.
Grandpa Tian, are you saying that Mother is leaving again?
Tang Tang looked a little lonely.
Although the male babies seemed very calm, it was obvious that they were trying their best to suppress their emotions.
They had just reunited with their mother not long ago.
Moreover, they were in a wonderful space before and could follow their mother. As long as their mother had time, they would still be able to see her UI ten.
But now that her mother said that she would move to the south to treat patients, it meant that she would definitely not bring them along.
It would be a long separation this time, and they had no idea when their next reunion would be.
Tang Tang, I know you cant bear to be separated from Mother, but shes doing this to save more people. You should know that a terrible disease has started to spread in the city.
If your mother hadnt acted in time, many uncles, aunts, grandparents would have died. The same thing is happening in many ces in the south, so she has to go.
Imperial Doctor Tian looked at the babies in front of him and felt his heart ache.
He was also a father and grandfather, so he knew very well how sad it was for the children to be separated from their mother for a long time.
However, MO Ruyues children were all smart and sensible. They were just having a hard time adapting to the current situation. However, they had always supported MO Ruyues decision without reservation.
Grandpa Tian, dont worry. We all know that Mother is a doctor who treats and saves people. She seems to be the most afraid of trouble and sometimes is a little unreasonable, but she is the best person.
Tang Tang shook her head. Although there were still tears in her eyes, her face revealed an extremely proud expression.
Good children. Youre all good children. No wonder Ruyue loves you so much. She also sent a message saying that youll definitely understand her intentions.
Imperial Doctor Tian handed the letter from MO Ruyue to Da Bao. Da Bao, take a look. Ruyue will head south from the quarantine vige and wont being back. So, you have to take good care of your siblings from now on. I understand, Grandpa Tian. I wont let Mother down.
Da Bao took the letter but didnt open it on the spot. Instead, he folded it carefully and put it away carefully..
Chapter 469 - 469: Magical Medicine
Chapter 469: Magical Medicine
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Then Ill take my leave first. I still need to take care of the medical center in the city. No matter what you need, you can look for me or the county magistrate directly. Dont be shy to ask.
Imperial Doctor Tian left the courtyard after giving hisst warning.
Although he couldnt understand why MO Ruyue couldnte back to see the babies before she left, he seemed to understand her thoughts when he saw how sensible they were.
After all, they had to part ways. A hasty meeting could not ease the sadness of the babies. It was better to let them ept this reality as soon as possible. She would rush back as soon as possible after she hadpleted what she wanted to do.
Life was abination of separation and reunion. The sooner one adapted to it, the calmer one would be.
After Imperial Doctor Tian left, the babies looked at Da Bao.
Even though Grandpa Liu, Grandma Liu, and Uncle Feng were there, the backbone of their hearts was still their brother, Da Bao.
Mother only sent a letter, which is also a sign of her trust in us. These days, we all know what kind of personality Mother has. I wont say much. Everyone should know what to do, right?
Da Bao didnt say much) but every word hit the nail on the head. The babies responded quickly.
Yes, Big Brother, we all understand. We definitely wont let Mother worry.
Big Brother, we can take care of ourselves. Were already used to it.
Leave the cooking to me. Im usually the one cooking anyway.
Well share the housework like before. Its not difficult.
Everyone was talking at once. Mrs. Liu watched from the side for a long time, but did not participate in them. Instead, she said to her husband beside her, Husband, Ruyues babies are so adorable.
Yes, they are all good children who can be loved. They say that were taking care of them, but look at them. Theyre taking good care of themselves. No wonder Ruyue is so assured.
Uncle Liu had been with the babies for a long time now. The smile on his face gradually increased) and he even spoke more.
They were d that they had been kind to the children of the Qin family from the beginning, and they had also received MO Ruyues kindness in return.
Material possessions were not important. What was important was that they had once again obtained their most precious family.
On the other side, in the quarantine vige, MO Ruyue solemnly handed the newly developed medicinal soup to Imperial Doctor Tian.
Elder Tian, Ive already prepared the medicinal herbs. You just need to get the medicine boy to boil them on time for the patients to drink.
The people in the city also need to drink another kind of medicine. It can effectively improve their preventive ability.
Most importantly, once the city gates are reopened and people and goods are flowing, we must also do a good job of testing and screening.
MO Ruyue carefully reminded him. Although she knew that Imperial Doctor Tian was also an experienced old doctor, he still did not have theplete and meticulous experience of theter generations when it came to epidemic prevention and control.
have already prepared thousands of portions of this potion in advance. Each person only needs a small bottle. You must personally handle this. You must not let a second person do it for you.
Elder Tian, please take care of this. Im leaving now.
She wrote down the things to take note of in advance and handed it to Imperial Doctor Tian.
It took her another day to prepare the potion before she finally started to prepare to go south.
The babies had specially asked Imperial Doctor Tian to bring their luggage, and the carriage had been rushed over by the bailiffs sent by Sir Fan. They had no need for MO Ruyue to return to Chu City.
In fact, even if she didnt prepare anything, she would have everything in the space. It was just that she had to bring the carriage with her to hide from others.
Big ck did not need to be restrained and followed behind the carriage freely.
It was exactly the same configuration as when they went to the south to provide disaster relief after the natural disaster. However, this time, there was no Gu Ying beside them, and there were no longer any babies in the space.
Ruyue, dont worry. I know what to do with the medicine. I wont let anyone else do it. Sir Fan has also said that in times of emergency, we will increase our efforts to crack down on ck-hearted merchants and fake medicine. Nothing will happen.
Thats good. Elder Tian, Ill be leaving now.
MO Ruyue was a very efficient person. After she finished her exhortations, she immediately jumped onto the carriage and set off toward the south.
Imperial Doctor Tian stood at the entrance of the quarantine vige and looked out for a long time until the carriage was no longer in sight. Only then did he turn around and return to the vige.
After MO Ruyue left the quarantine vige, she released another giant wolf and let it smell the Bai familys token that Gu Ying had brought back. Then, she let it run away happily.
She herself followed behind the carriage and sped along.
Since the epidemic had already appeared in Chu City, the cities and towns along the way were basically not spared.
MO Ruyue could only slow down as much as she could. She would stop when she saw a traveler or a vige passing by to scout out the situation first.
This time, the gue broke out very quickly. Even if it did not break out for the time being, the infected people would have some undetectable symptoms.
Moreover, once the patients organs were infected by the virus, they would also emit an unpleasant smell.
MO Ruyues five senses were very sharp. Even if they just brushed past each other, she could still determine if the person was healthy just by smelling them.
In order to avoid unnecessary trouble, she even took the initiative to take out the document ofmendation from The Imperial Court and the document prepared for her by the county magistrate Fan Yi. She hung it beside the carriage door to prove her identity as a divine doctor.
With these two documents as proof, she managed to save more than 20 to 30 people on the way.
Divine Doctor MO, its a good thing that we met you. Otherwise, we might have escaped the natural disaster, but we couldnt escape the gue. We would have lost our lives.
A middle-aged man thanked Mo Ruyue profusely.
His family had contracted the gue at some point in time. First, his grandson had symptoms, then the middle-aged mans wife. Now, only his son, who had been practicing martial arts all year round, was in good health and had not contracted it.
Although they really wanted to rush to the next town to ask for help, because they no longer had the strength to hurry, the family could only stop by the roadside and wait for death.
Fortunately, MO Ruyue appeared.
With just a small bottle of medicine, his grandson, who was almost dead, was revived. This kind of magical medical skills, coupled with themendation order and certification documents stamped with the official seal,pletely dispelled the doubts of the middle-aged mans family.
Its good as long as youre fine. I originally wanted to go south to save people because of the epidemic. Dont worry, Ive given you medicine. As long as you insist on taking the medicine for two or three days, youll bepletely cured.
In order to save time, MO Ruyue had increased the dosage of the spirit spring water in the medicine she had given to the patients.
This would ensure that they would recover in the fastest time without harming their bodies..
Chapter 470 - 470: Poisoned
470 Poisoned
Mo Ruyue walked to the capital in one go.
After arriving in the capital, she took the token given by Xue Qing and found the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency. She found out that Gu Ying was also staying here. He would only eat, drink, and pee in the examination hall for the next few days. After leaving the examination hall, he would alsoe here.
Mo Ruyue first inquired about the location of the examination hall from the bodyguard agency. After finding out, she went to buy things for the children.
The streets of the capital were notparable to those of Kaoshan Town or Lianshan County. The degree of prosperity wasparable to that of theter generations.
She casually nced at the stalls selling flower essories on the street. They were not suitable for children to wear, so she did not go to look. Coincidentally, there was a jewelry shop on her right. Mo Ruyue went straight into the shop.
As soon as she entered, she saw two familiar white figures.
The two white figures had also noticed her when Mo Ruyue entered. The Yuan Sisters thought that they had mistaken her for someone else, but after taking a closer look, they realized who it was if not Mo Ruyue!
The two sisters looked at each other and saw Mo Ruyue walking straight toward them.
Heh, was she trying to get close to them?
The Yuan Sisters waited for Mo Ruyue to speak. If she was humble enough, it was not impossible for them to acknowledge her.
In the end, Mo Ruyue walked straight to the counter behind them.
"Shopkeeper, please show me this."
It was a pair of butterfly beaded flowers made of pink pearls the size of rice grains. The butterfly''s eyes were iid with red gems, and its tentacles were made of gold thread. It was small, cute, and beautiful. It was the most suitable for a little girl to wear, and it happened to be a pair.
Mo Ruyue imagined Tang Tang''s wearing those on her head. She would definitely look good wearing one on each side.
When the shopkeeper took out the butterfly beaded flower, the butterfly''s wings trembled so lifelike that it looked real.
"How much is this?"
Mo Ruyue had just finished her question when a discordant voice came from the side.
"Some people are really overestimating themselves and are ignorant. They think that this flower is a cheap thing."
"I thought it was just a rural ce. You can''t bargain here."
After Yuan Yuan finished speaking, she looked like she was waiting for a good show, waiting to see Mo Ruyue get pped in the face.
There were other people in the shop who were also looking at jewelry. When they heard Yuan Yuan''s words, they all looked at Mo Ruyue.
Although Mo Ruyue was dressed inly, her appearance was not ordinary. She did not look like an ignorant person. However, one could not judge a book by its cover.
The shopkeeper was about to tell Mo Ruyue the price, but he didn''t know if he should say it after Yuan Yuan''s words.
Mo Ruyue wanted to pretend that she didn''t see them, but this person still dared to approach her.
"Shopkeeper, are you selling this pearl flower?"
The shopkeeper saw Mo Ruyue dressed like a middle-aged woman and was wearing ordinary clothes.
No, he took a closer look and saw that Mo Ruyue was wearing a simple style of clothes. However, the material was not ordinary. Those who could afford to wear this kind of material were either rich or noble.
Fortunately, he did not offend anyone.
"Of course, all the jewelry in this store is for sale."
The shopkeeper immediately replied with a smile.
"How much?"
"Although these pearls are only the size of a grain of rice, each of them is the same size and round in color. The four red gems on the two butterflies are imported from South Yue Kingdom. Two in a pair, sixteen taels."
Mo Ruyue nodded and pointed at another pair of lc pearl flowers in the cab. They were also made of pearls and decorated with purple gemstones.
"Show me that pair too."
This pair was a little bigger than the previous one.
"That one is even more expensive. I think you shouldn''t give it to her. Just quote her the price directly. Wait until she''s sure that she wants it before taking it. If you take it again and knock it, no one willpensate you."
She didn''t believe that Mo Ruyue would be willing to buy it. The cheapest thing here was at least ten taels of silver.
"Youngdies of the Yuan Family, are you that free? If you don''t buy things yourself, you''ll think that this shop belongs to you."
Mo Ruyue''s words rendered the Yuan Sisters speechless. However, they still didn''t leave. They wanted to see Mo Ruyue suffer because she couldn''t afford to buy anything. Otherwise, how could they vent their anger?
Mo Ruyue ignored them. She pointed at the other two pearl hairpins on the counter and said to the shopkeeper, "How much is the total for these two and the pair of purple beads?"
The shopkeeper didn''t think that Mo Ruyue was someone who couldn''t afford it. Just the clothes she was wearing were enough to buy two pearl hairpins.
"Madam, you have good taste. You picked thetest models. The two pearl hairpins and the pair of purple pearl flowers cost a total of 112 taels."
"What about this pair of butterflies?
"Shopkeeper, I bought so many at once. Aren''t you going to give me a discount?"
The Yuan Sisters watched Mo Ruyue pretend.
"Madam, this shop doesn''t bargain. However, if you buy them all, I can give you another pair of pearl flowers."
The shopkeeper chuckled as he introduced Mo Ruyue to the pearl flowers that she could gift. They were actually quite pretty and were all pearl strings, but theycked gems.
Mo Ruyue picked out a pair of small and exquisite ones for Tang Tang.
She readily paid 128 taels and asked the shopkeeper to pack up all the items she had chosen. The Yuan Sisters widened their eyes when they saw this.
They didn''t expect Mo Ruyue to really buy it and spend more than a hundred taels without even blinking. How was that possible?
Could it be that she bought it now and would return it to the shopkeeper after they left? It must be like this!
Yuan Yuan called out to Mo Ruyue unwillingly when she saw that Mo Ruyue was about to leave the shop with her things.
"You can''t return itter!"
As for her younger sister, Yuan Shan, she did not say anything, but she did not stop Yuan Yuan.
Mo Ruyue stood still and took two steps closer to Yuan Yuan. She sniffed her nose and quickly covered her mouth and nose with her hands as she retreated.
"Seeing that you''re still wearing a veil, I know that the sores on your face must not have healed yet."
"Not only have you not recovered, but you''ve be even more serious. This poison is getting more and more powerful."
Mo Ruyue was puzzled.
"Other than you, there are two other doctors in your family who didn''t notice that you were poisoned. Or could it be that they can''t even cure such a small poison? Tsk tsk, how pitiful."
"Let me give you a piece of advice. Don''t go to crowded ces, or those poisonous sores on your face will only get worse."
Mo Ruyue nced at Yuan Yuan pitifully after she finished speaking. She then happily left with the beaded jewelry she had just bought.
There were already quite a few people in the shop. When Mo Ruyue was talking about this, a few more people entered the shop and heard what Mo Ruyue said. They were all looking at the Yuan sisters who were wearing veils.
"So it''s a sore on your face, but Imperial Doctor Yuan is an Imperial Doctor, and he can''t cure it?"
"I heard that Madam was poisoned. I wonder what kind of poison she was poisoned with?"
"How did Miss Yuan get poisoned? Is it true or false?"
"Mo Ruyue, stop right there! Exin yourself! "
Yuan Yuan was so angry that she lost her mind. She rushed out of the shop and was about to chase after Mo Ruyue when Yuan Shan pulled her back.
"Sister, forget it. There are too many people here. That Mo Ruyue must have bad intentions. Don''t believe her."
"Let''s go back to the residence, lest we be a joke."
Initially, Mo Ruyue did not want to bother with them, but after hearing Yuan Shan''s words, she turned around.
"The sores on your face are obviously caused by an allergy. Go back and check what you use or eat to make sure there''s something that causes you to be allergic. Often, the person you trust the most is the one who harmed you."
Chapter 471 - 471: Who Did She Provoke
Chapter 471: Who Did She Provoke
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue shot a meaningful nce at Yuan Shan before disappearing into the crowd in a few steps.
She had long discovered that there was something wrong with Yuan Shan. She had repeatedly mentioned that the sores on Yuan Yuans face were poisonous, but she would always interrupt her. She was really the most vicious woman. Moreover, they were twin sisters.
Since you like to cause trouble so much, why dont you take off your veil and kill each other?
The appearance of the Yuan Sisters dampened MO Ruyues mood. After she left the jewelry shop, she saw the bustling streets. Since she had nothing to do back at the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency, she might as well continue strolling around the streets.
Little did she know that after she left, the Yuan Sisters expressions in the jewelry shop were extremely ugly.
Unknowingly, MO Ruyue strolled until noon. She was also a little hungry. Thinking of the waist token that Hua Jianan had given her, she found the Immortal Crane Restaurant branch in the capital.
Although it was a branch store, it wasrger than the main store in Reliance Town.
Before she came, Hua Jianan had specially asked her to help him take a look at the branch. If there was anything wrong, she would help him take a look and tell him when she went back.
Because of Xue Qings pregnancy, he couldnt find time toe to Beijing for a long time.
MO Ruyue readily agreed.
Just as she entered the Immortal Crane Towers hall, she coincidentally saw another familiar face.
Just as MO Ruyue was about to call out to Song Jiaxin, she saw that there were quite a few people around her. They seemed to be talking to someone. Perhaps they were receiving guests. It was lunchtime now, so it was better for her not to disturb them. She would wait until after dinner to see if she could wait for Song Jiaxin toe out before greeting her.
She saw that there were quite a lot of people in the lobby and it was a little noisy. She thought that it would be quieter to let the waiter bring her to a private room.
Waiter.
Waiter, give us a sky-ss room.
MO Ruyue had just opened her mouth when someone interrupted her. She heard the familiar yet annoying voice. Without turning around, she knew that it was the Yuan Sisters voice.
Yo, the sisters arent fighting?
It seemed that Yuan Yuan was a weakling.
The Yuan Sisters also happened to see MO Ruyue at this moment. Enemies really meet on a narrow road!
They really thought that this was a small vige where any Tom, Dick, and Harry coulde in.
That was what they thought, but the Yuan sisters were smart and didnt say it out loud.
With the two young masters beside them, they also thought that they could not lose their manners in front of the young masters.
Im sorry, but the sky-ss rooms are already booked.
The waiter greeted them with a smile.
Then give us the earth tier. It must be better.
Im sorry, but the rooms in the earth tier are also gone, the waiter replied with a smile.
When the Yuan Sisters heard the waiters words, their expressions turned extremely ugly.
What about the other rooms?
Im really sorry, young masters and youngdies. Its not because of the emperors great kindness. The nearby inns probably wont have any empty rooms for the next few days.
Why dont the young masters and youngdies see if they can make do in the hall?
Otherwise, you can go to the other inns to see if there are any good rooms. Our inn is really full. Im really sorry.
The waiters words were also repeated in all the inns. Song Jiaxin also couldnt book a room.
Once the news of Enke was released, schrs from all over the world rushed over as soon as they heard the news. The number of people attending the spring and autumn examinations was even more than when thete emperor was still alive. The rooms had long been booked out. There was no other way.
The Yuan Sisters and the two young masters could only leave in disappointment after hearing that. However, when they left, they found MO Ruyue still standing there.
Miss Yuan, why dont we stay in the lobby?
The young master next to Yuan Shan thought that the Yuan Sisters were unwilling to leave, so he spoke politely.
Thats not good. Why dont we change to two inns? Only people with no status will go to the lobby.
She looked at MO Ruyue meaningfully.
MO Ruyue noticed the unfriendly looks the Yuan Sisters gave her, but she ignored them.
ording to what happened in the jewelry shop, the sisters should be fighting at home. How could they still be in the mood toe out for dinner?
Lets eat then. Now, you still find her an eyesore. Who did she offend? She really thinks that the whole world belongs to her parents. Who gave you the right to spoil her!
MO Ruyue immediately took out her waist token and handed it to the waiter. She wanted to anger the Yuan Sisters to death.
When the Yuan Sisters saw MO Ruyues smile, they felt that she was putting on an act, especially when it came to that broken wooden sign.
However, the waiter stopped smiling and respectfully led MO Ruyue upstairs to the sky-ss room.
The Yuan Sisters and the others only reacted when they saw the waiter directly bring MO Ruyue into the sky-ss room.
How was this possible?
How could that country bumpkin MO Ruyue have entered the first room of the sky-ss tier? Didnt they say that there were no more rooms?
The first sky-ss room had always been used by the owner. Could it be that MO Ruyue was the owner of Immortal Crane Tower?
Impossible, absolutely impossible!
After the waiter brought MO Ruyue to the first sky-ss room, he respectfully retreated and hurriedly ran to the shopkeeper. This person was equivalent to their boss, so they had to treat her well. There must not be the slightest mistake. This was what their boss had instructed long ago.
Although this person had always been a legend and had never seen her in person, the waiter was still very surprised and secretly happy. It turned out that this mysterious person was a girl, and he was the first to see her!
No matter what the waiter thought, he was not slow, but he was blocked by someone downstairs.
You just told us that there were no more rooms. Why did you bring that person to a room? And its the first room in the sky-ss tier?
When the waiter faced the Yuan Sisters and the other guests, he returned to his usual smiling face. However, he was not afraid at all. His attitude waspletely different from the one he had when he received MO Ruyue. It felt like the difference between heaven and earth.
Miss, there really isnt any room left. That room was booked by the previous customer.
As a result of the shopkeepers training, all the waiters in the shop, including the shopkeeper himself, would never reveal the identity information of the boss and other important people.
As far as I know, she only came to the capital two days ago. How could she have booked it in advance?
Did she give you any benefits? Im willing to pay double the price. Ask her toe out and let us in!
Yuan Yuan had always held a grudge against MO Ruyue for exposing the sores on her face in front of everyone. Naturally, she disliked MO Ruyue. Moreover, she could enter the private room while she could only squeeze into the main hall. How could she tolerate it?
Miss, youre making things difficult for me. That was really set by thatdy before. This is the rule of the inn, and I cant change it.
Besides, that esteemed guest didnt give me any bribes.
Yuan Yuan refused to believe the waiters words. She felt that the waiter must have received some benefits from MO Ruyue.
Its okay if you cant make the decision. Call your innkeeper over.
Even if this youngdy called our shopkeeper over, the result would still be the same.
The smile on the waiters face had already disappeared. Why was this girl so difficult to deal with? He had seen many people like this, but he was not afraid at all..
Chapter 472 - 472: Do You Not Want to Live Anymore?
Chapter 472: Do You Not Want to Live Anymore?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The Yuan Sisters dispute with the waiter had finally attracted the shopkeepers attention. Even Song Jiaxin and the others had also been attracted by them. The reason was that they couldnt get a room. Coincidentally, someone had entered the room, but those who hade first didnt. They all looked over.
The waiter told the innkeeper what had happened. The innkeeper first went to the first room in the sky-ss tier and personally served MO Ruyues order.
Then, he went down to deal with the Yuan Sisters and the others.
The waiter did not understand the importance of MO Ruyues identity, but the shopkeeper was very clear about it.
Every time his boss came over, he would tell him that if a customer named MO Ruyue came one day, he must treat her like his old boss, or even more respectfully than his old boss. Otherwise, his old boss would definitely take him to test his medicine. Those who didntply would bear the consequences.
Who would dare to disobey?
MO Ruyue didnt know that the people outside were quarreling because of her. MO Ruyue was enjoying the delicious food in her room. The taste of this restaurant was not much different from the Immortal Crane Restaurant at home. It was also because it was closer to the restaurant, and the taste was the same here. The master who cooked here must have been trained.
She ordered five dishes and had basically finished them all. Those who had not booked a room downstairs had already been invited away by the innkeeper.
MO Ruyue did not see Song Jiaxin when she came out, so she went out as well. Lets meet again if fate allows it.
MO Ruyue strolled around the streets to digest her food before returning to the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency.
When the people from the escort agency saw Mo Ruyue return, they greeted her and asked her if she had eaten. She did not know where they had found a maidservant to serve her, but MO Ruyue did not reject their good intentions.
At night, after washing up, the maidservant left the room and stayed in the wing room to keep watch. MO Ruyue learned from the maidservant that this small independent courtyard was where Xue Qing used to live.
Three days before she came, the Xue Familys Bodyguard Agency had received a letter from Xue Qing and had already tidied up the courtyard.
MO Ruyue was not unustomed to living here. She nned to spend the day in this small courtyard tomorrow. She would be able to go home after picking up Gu Ying the day after tomorrow.
A man in ck suddenly appeared in Yuan Shans room and reported to her through the screen.
Miss is staying in the Xue Familys Bodyguard Agency. There are many experts there. Before we can find MO Ruyue, we will be stopped by them.
Yuan Shan did not expect MO Ruyue to be resting in the Xue Family Bodyguard
Agency. What was her rtionship with the Xue Family? She suddenly thought of Gu Ying.
Since they knew each other, it was only natural for them toe to the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency. How could they have forgotten about this?
He had wanted to call a few people to teach her a lesson, but it seemed that this path would not work.
I understand. You may leave.
After the man in ck left, Yuan Shans maidservant helped herb her hair. She looked at Yuan Shans expression and probed.
Miss, are you going to let this go?
Forget it, how is that possible?
However, she did not say what she should do next. The little maidservant also knew her identity and did not continue to ask. Especially when the young miss was angry, it was very scary. Just now, she was just following the young miss expression to figure out what to do. Fortunately, she asked the right question.
Yuan Shan thought hatefully that as long as MO Ruyue was still in the capital, she would have a chance to take revenge.
If it wasnt for that stinky woman, how could her sister have suspected her?
She had spent a lot of effort to fool her sister today, but she knew that it wouldnt be long before she couldnt fool her.
Its all that bitch MO Ruyues fault. Shes such a busybody!
Humph! Didnt she like to be a busybody?
She would definitely leave a deep impression on her this time.
The next morning, MO Ruyue had just woken up when the maidservant rushed over.
Miss MO, youre up. Hurry up and tidy up. Someone from the pce wants you to enter the pce to see Consort Li and deliver the baby. MO Ruyue dug her ears, thinking that she had misheard.
You want me to enter the pce?
She was only here to pick up Gu Ying, and it had only been a day, yet everyone in the pce already knew?
Or was she being watched?
The maidservant was also worried for MO Ruyue.
Yes, Miss Mo. The eunuch in the pce is waiting for you outside.
Those eunuchs dont have good tempers, you should hurry up, this servant will go with you.
MO Ruyue knew that this was not fake. She had just arrived in the capital, so who knew that she was a doctor? How did they know that she could deliver babies? She was clearly famous for curing the gue, but now she was a professional midwife?
What kind of sin did shemit!
She did not know how those people knew about her.
Although she was depressed, she quickly packed up. When she went out, she saw a man in his thirties who had a pale face and was dressed like a eunuch.
When the man saw MO Ruyue, he walked up to her with a straight face.
This must be Doctor Mo. Quickly follow me into the pce.
The situation was pressing, so MO Ruyue had no choice but to follow the eunuch.
Fortunately, Tang Tang had stuffed her with a bag before she left. It could be said to be a medical bag. It was filled with all the equipment that she usually used to treat patients and even perform surgery.
She had even opened it to take a look earlier. There was even an anesthetic inside.
At this moment, she suspected that Tang Tang had already predicted that something was going to happen to her, so she prepared it in advance. She thought about it and shook her head.
However, she did not bring this bag with her. Even if she had never entered the pce, she knew that amoner like her would definitely be searched if she entered the pce. It was impossible for those sharp weapons to be allowed into the pce.
The maidservant could only follow her to the pce gate. The pce did not allow people who were not summoned to enter.
If someonees to you with this silver hairpin on his head and asks you to give him my bundle, give the bundle on the bed to that person.
The maidservant remembered and nodded.
MO Ruyue followed the eunuch to the Imperial Pce. When the maidservant saw MO Ruyue enter the pce, she returned to the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency.
Sure enough, MO Ruyue had just entered the pce gates and was only allowed to enter after being searched by the pce maids. MO Ruyue could not do anything about it no matter how unwilling she was. In ancient times, social sses were already very strict, so she hated this cage-like pce even more. She decided that she would never enter the pce unless it was absolutely necessary.
After walking for about half an hour, they finally arrived at the pce where Consort Li lived.
As soon as she entered the hall, she heard a womans shouting from inside the room. She really didnt understand. She was about to give birth, and she was urgently asked toe and deliver the baby, but she was asked to walk for so long. Couldnt she have let a few people carry the pnquin and run in?
The nanny at the door looked anxious. When she saw the stern face of the person who hade, the eunuch said that MO Ruyue was Doctor MO, so she was let in.
You must deliver our Empress well. If anything goes wrong, be careful of your life!
MO Ruyue was about to walk in, but when she heard the grannys words, she retracted her foot and turned to look at the granny.
Then I dont need to go in to see Consort Li. You should find someone else.
The granny saw how bold MO Ruyue was and how she even refused. Who gave her the guts to do that? She immediately rebuked.
How dare you! Do you want to die?
MO Ruyue immediately shook her head in fright.
No, its precisely because Im so cowardly that I dont dare to go in. I havent even gone in to deliver Consort Lis child yet, and youre already threatening me that Ill die if I dont do it well.
Go find someone who is not afraid of death to deliver Consort Lis baby. I am afraid of death anyway..
Chapter 473 - 473: Premature Birth
Chapter 473: Premature Birth
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
You, you, you!
The nanny didnt expect MO Ruyue to not only have a sharp tongue, but also speak so confidently. She was so angry that she didnt know how to retort. She could only say that MO Ruyue was bold and impudent.
In the end, she realized that she was extremely angry, but MO Ruyue was still standing there without moving. If anything happened to Consort Li and the heir in her stomach, no one could bear the responsibility.
The nanny was furious and indignant. She raised her hand and was about to p MO Ruyue.
Seeing the nannys actions, MO Ruyue bent down and sat on the ground, coincidentally avoiding the nannys p.
Granny, stop shouting. The more you shout, the more scared I am. Look at my legs. They are so weak that I cant stand up.
MO Ruyue looked around as she spoke. The pce maids and eunuchs widened their eyes and stared at her in disbelief.
You all saw and heard it too. It was the nanny who kept trying to scare me. I havent even gone in to give birth to the baby, and she was trying to beat me. Who would still be able to settle down to treat and give birth to Consort Lis child? My legs are so weak that I cant even stand up.
This granny is obstructing me in every possible way and doesnt want me to deliver Consort Lis child. I wonder what she is nning?
MO Ruyue seemed to be mumbling to herself, but every word was clear. The people around her heard her clearly. After she finished speaking, the pce maids and eunuchs also looked at the nanny with strange eyes.
The nanny was so angry that her vision turned ck. How dare this audacious woman!
MO Ruyuesmotion had drawn the people inside the room out. It was a youngdy in her twenties. She was dressed like a pce maid and should be Consort Lis maidservant.
Whats going on? Is Doctor MO here?
Do you want to die?
If Consort Li wasnt in a difficult situation, she would have killed these people long ago.
Thismoner is MO Ruyue!
However, when this woman just arrived, this nanny threatened to beat and kill this woman. This woman is so scared that her legs are weak and she cant stand up.
MO Ruyue was the first to speak, cutting off the nannys words.
Come in with me quickly.
The maidservant immediately pulled MO Ruyue up from the ground. She was so strong that MO Ruyue suspected that the maidservant knew martial arts.
The head maidservant turned to the pce maids and eunuchs outside the hall, and finally fixed her gaze on the face of the old woman.
If you really dy the Empress, no one can live!
You guys guard outside. If you make any more noise, youll be beaten to death!
The head maidservant threw out a few words and pulled MO Ruyue into the hall without listening to the nannys exnation.
This time, the nanny really couldnt exin it even if she had a mouth, and the pce door had already closed with a bang.
After entering the room, MO Ruyue was no longer as weak as before.
When did the Empress act up? Was it a normal attack in the month, or was it ?a natural birth, or was there something else? How long has it been? Whats the situation now?
The head maidservant did not expect MO Ruyue to suddenly change her expression, so she did not dy her reply.
It happened at the beginning of the morning and was not yet full term. It was more than half a month early. The imperial doctor said that the Empress fetal position was not right.
The words dystocia swirled in her mouth, but she did not say it out loud. She did not dare to say such words, afraid that something would happen to the Empress after she said it.
Doctor MO, you are a divine doctor bestowed by thete Emperor. You will definitely be able to save the Empress, right? Our Empress.
Ill try my best. Im not really a divine doctor. It was just a coincidence that I cured the gue.
MO Ruyue didnt even need the head maid to lead the way and directly headed toward the source of the sound.
The maidservant saw MO Ruyue running as fast as flying and was even more anxious than she was, so she quickly trotted to catch up.
MO Ruyue walked all the way to the room where Consort Li was giving birth. When she opened the door, the doors and windows of the room were tightly shut, and there were many candles lit. The oxygen consumption was really high, and everyone in the room was drenched in sweat.
All those who are not rted to her, leave?
MO Ruyue looked around and pointed at the window furthest away from Consort Li.
Open that window to let some air in. In such a stuffy environment, even a normal person would be sick from being so stuffy.
As she said this, she nced at the two bearded old men in their forties. They were probably imperial doctors.
The maidservant did not dare to open it because the Empress was giving birth at the moment and could not let in the wind.
This cant be opened!
Another old nanny in the room hurriedly stopped her.
MO Ruyue turned to re at her.
Are you the doctor or am I the doctor?
Since you have such an idea, why did you call me here?
The few of them were stunned by MO Ruyues words. In the end, the maidservant braced herself and followed MO Ruyues instructions to open the window a little.
The other useless maids were also sent out.
Whos the midwife?
As for the two imperial doctors, MO Ruyue didnt want to ask them anything. They had been here for half a day and were just standing there in a daze. They couldnt help at all. Besides, the most they dared to do was to take Consort Lis pulse and check how many fingers were opened. Even if they were beheaded, they probably wouldnt dare to go and see.
Seeing that the two of them were still standing there, she frowned.
What? Dont you two understand what Im talking about? What are you two doing here?
Although the two imperial doctors were very angry and unhappy when they heard MO Ruyues words, they immediately thought of Consort Lis situation and were happy to leave. After they left, MO Ruyue would be alone. Whatever happened to Consort Li would have nothing to do with them.
The two imperial doctors looked at each other and then left.
MO Ruyue had already taken Consort Lis pulse and checked the opening of the pce.
In the end, she saw that the entrance of the pce did not show any signs of opening.
What happened to Consort Li that she had to go into prematurebor?
Youd better tell me the truth, or you might make a wrong judgment when delivering Consort Li.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, the head maidservant looked at the Empress who was in extreme pain.
Consort Li was covered in sweat and her lips were pale. She was about to faint.
After hearing MO Ruyues words, Consort Li didnt wait for the head maidservant to speak. She took advantage of the time when the pain was slightly less to catch her breath and opened her mouth.
Where did you fall?
MO Ruyue did not dy the babys position as she asked.
Consort Li only had the time to take a look at MO Ruyue at this moment. She was surprised to see that MO Ruyue was a young and beautiful girl. She did not expect MO Ruyue to be so young.
Consort Li was a little worried that MO Ruyues medical skills were reliable.
Those imperial doctors who were decades old and had decades of medical experience were all helpless. She was really worried that MO Ruyue would be able to do it.
Consort Li looked at MO Ruyue. At this moment, she could only treat MO Ruyue as herst straw.
MO Ruyue looked at the fetal position and felt a headacheing on. The baby in Consort Lis stomach was breech down. This was really difficult to give birth to.
Logically speaking, there was still half a month beforebor. The childs fetal position should be smooth, but it was a fall that led to prematurebor. The fetal position was not urate.
It could only be said that Consort Li was a little unlucky. It was obvious that this was definitely not a coincidence.
With the current fetal position, it should have been another month beforebor. Because of the fall, she was about to give birth, but the womb had not opened yet. This was the most difficult stage.
Ever since the Empress fell, has she taken any medicine?
The head maidservant nodded and immediately went to bring the prescription that the imperial doctor had given Consort Li.
The imperial doctor gave this medicine to the Empress..
Chapter 474 - 474: Give Me a Death Exemption Gold Plate
Chapter 474: Give Me a Death Exemption Gold te
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue took a look at it. It was only for consolidating ones foundation and nourishing ones qi. It was not very useful for pregnant women who had difficultbor.
But when she checked Consort Lis pulse, she found that it wasnt that simple.
There seemed to be something wrong.
Can you bring me the medicine?
Or the bowl of soup that Consort Li drank.
The head maidservant immediately brought over the bowl of medicine that Consort Li had drunk. There was still some residual juice at the bottom of the bowl.
MO Ruyue took the bowl of medicine and tasted it with a serious look in her eyes.
She immediately wrote a prescription for the maid.
Hurry up and get the medicine.
MO Ruyue whispered into Consort Lis ear after the maidservant left.
Is there anyone you trust?
Is that maidservant trustworthy?
Consort Li did not expect MO Ruyue to ask this question. She looked at MO Ruyue in confusion.
Someone must have deliberately caused you to fall, right? So, even if its the maidservant beside you, is she credible?
Consort Lis face turned even uglier after hearing MO Ruyues words. She knew about this, but she was already in this state. What could she do? The Emperor would note here.
Do you have a way to get the Emperor toe over? Or do you have the Emperor send a few capable and trustworthy people over? I need assistants. MO Ruyue asked.
MO Ruyue was thinking that it would be best if the Emperor came over personally. She had to personallymunicate with the Emperor that his wife had to have a caesarian section.
It had been more than two hours since MO Ruyue arrived. The pce had not even opened. Consort Li would probably die from the pain and would not be able to give birth.
Since she was already here, she couldnt just watch Consort Li and the child in her stomach die in front of her. At that time, she would also be unable to escape punishment. Now, she could only have a caesarian section.
Doctor MO, you must save the child in my stomach. I cant live without him!
Consort Lis hands were tightly gripping onto MO Ruyue, her nails almost digging into MO Ruyues flesh, but she still refused to let go. She stared at MO Ruyue, waiting for her to nod.
Ever since she was pregnant, she had been in a state of panic every day. She had never had a good nights sleep. Every day, she would carefully check her food for poison. She had waited until thest moment, but she still suffered.
Fortunately, she could feel that the child in her stomach was still safe. As long as she could give birth to him, both mother and son would be safe.
Then think of a way to get the Emperor toe over.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Consort Lis eyes hardened. Even if she didnt call the Emperor over, she might not be able to see him for thest time. She might as well take this opportunity to risk the death penalty and ask the Emperor toe over.
Consort Li asked her nanny to go to the Emperor and tell her that she was dying and wanted to see the Emperor onest time.
The child in Consort Lis stomach was also the Emperors first child. He valued this child quite a bit, so the Emperor came in fifteen minutester.
Greetings to the Emperor.
Ji Hong raised his hand to stop them from saluting and did not enter the hall. He saw the two imperial doctors and asked solemnly, How is Consort Li? The two imperial doctors hurriedly kowtowed.
This official doesnt know. After that Doctor MO came, she chased all of us out.
One of the imperial doctors directly sold MO Ruyue out and said nothing else. If they continued to talk, it would be too much and it would backfire.
In any case, the Emperor was here, and now he saw them being chased out. It couldnt be better.
MO Ruyue heard the pce maids and eunuchs greeting the Emperor loudly and knew that the Emperor had arrived. She asked Consort Li to calm down and walked out of the pce.
The moment she opened the door, she saw Ji Hong and MO Ruyue facing each other.
Ji Hong was stunned as well. He didnt expect MO Ruyue to be here and thought he was seeing things.
MO Ruyue, why are you here?
Long time no see.
I didnt even have a bite of food early in the morning when I was dragged here by an old man.
Consort Lis condition is very bad. She fell down and caused prematurebor. The fetal position is not right, and someone gave her medicine that causes contractions.
Although its not much, the child in her stomach has to be born in time.
As soon as MO Ruyue finished speaking, the two imperial doctors immediately knelt down in fear.
There were no other imperial doctors who hade earlier, only the two of them. Now that MO Ruyue had said this, it was obvious that she was trying to nder them!
Im innocent, Your Majesty!
Tell them to shut up. Consort Li is very weak now, they cant make any noise.
Ji Hong nced over and the two imperial doctors immediately shut their mouths in fear. One of them even burped.
What happened?
I dont know about that. You need to investigate it yourself.
Lets talk in private, please.
MO Ruyue pointed at the pce hall to let Ji Hong in. The pce maids and eunuchs widened their eyes in disbelief as they looked at the rude MO Ruyue. How dare she speak so casually in front of the Emperor? Was it a great crime to be beheaded?
Now, she actually dared to let the Emperor enter that filthy ce. Consort Li was the one who gave birth there, how could she let the Emperor enter?
However, they were dumbfounded to find that the Emperor had obediently followed MO Ruyue into the pce. Were they seeing things?
The pce maids and eunuchs rubbed their eyes.
The decisive Emperor actually obediently followed MO Ruyue into the pce where Consort Li was giving birth?
What kind of shocking secret had they seen? Would the Emperor turn around and kill them all?
Some of the pce maids and eunuchs couldnt help but tremble as they cursed in their hearts. Which unlucky God had invited Doctor MO here? It would be fine if Consort Li could give birth smoothly today, but if anything went wrong, they would lose their heads. At this moment, they could feel that their heads had already reached their heels.
Ji Hong was initially a little nervous when he saw MO Ruyue, but he heaved a sigh of relief when he saw that MO Ruyue was still the same as before.
Listen to me. Someone is trying to harm your wife and child. Its best if you can find two very trustworthy people to help me. Your wifes stomach has to be torn open so that the child can be safely born.
Also, you have to send someone back to the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency to bring me my bag. Everything I need is inside.
You must send someone you trust to do these things.
MO Ruyue said a long list of words, then looked at Ji Hong. Ji Hong nodded, indicating that he understood.
Consort Li might not be able to make it, but she had to protect the child in her stomach no matter what.
This was the child that he had carefully nned. He definitely could not let it die prematurely. It was already thest moment. No matter what, he had to protect that child. Although he had let Consort Li down, he would definitely take care of her child in the future.
You can go in now and talk to Consort Li to boost her confidence. This way, her condition will be much better.
Ji Hong nodded, but he did not move. He looked at MO Ruyue, who was not afraid of his gaze. Instead, she thought of something.
Oh right, I saved you twice in the past, and now I have to save your wife and child. No matter what, I can get a death exemption medal from you!
Upon hearing MO Ruyues request, Ji Hong did not get angry. Instead, the corners of his mouth curled up. This woman was always like this, always putting her life first.
Indeed, every man puts himself first. Even he was always doing it for himself..
Chapter 475 - 475: Each Has His Own Love
Chapter 475: Each Has His Own Love
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Alright, Ill get someone to send it over immediately. Take this first. You can also use it as a death-exemption token.
He knew that MO Ruyue was worried about him. She was afraid that he would punish her after Consort Li died.
Seeing that she did not lose herposure and think for him in this cruel ce, he was very pleased.
Ji Hong took the dragon-patterned jade pendant from his waist and ced it in MO Ruyues hand. MO Ruyue did not hesitate to put it into her bosom.
Do you need anything else?
Just mention it.
No, youre quite busy. Also, you have to find the person who drugged Consort Li. After I take her child out, you have to take care of her carefully. You cant keep such a dangerous person by your side. That wont be good for Consort Li and your child.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Ji Hong asked in confusion, Are you saying that Consort Li can still survive after a caesarian section?
Of course. Otherwise, do you think you can only choose one?
MO Ruyue replied seriously.
You really can keep Consort Li and the child alive?
ording to the current situation, the child will definitely survive. If Consort Li has a strong will to live, as long as she follows my advice, there should be no problem.
Ji Hong understood now. Although MO Ruyue was talking about something he had never seen before, he still had a sense of trust in her.
He immediately ordered his men to carry out MO Ruyues request. In the time it took to brew a cup of tea, all the things MO Ruyue needed and two assistants were brought to the scene.
I like it when youre so straightforward. Go out and guard the door. No one is allowed to enter.
Remember, before I leave, no one is allowed to enter or disturb me.
After Ji Hong nodded and left, MO Ruyue asked the two assistants to put on clean clothes and wash their hands and disinfect them ording to her instructions.
These twodies were Ji Hongs shadow guards, specially groomed in secret. This time, he took out two of them to use.
Ji Hong didnt believe the others. Not a single one of them was useful.
The two female shadow guards saw MO Ruyue giving Consort Li some medicine and pricking her stomach with needles. Consort Li then said that she could no longer feel her stomach pain.
If the Emperor hadnt instructed them to follow MO Ruyues instructions and not to question her, they would have stepped forward to stop her. But in the end, they had gone even further.
MO Ruyue took out a small knife and cut open Consort Lis stomach before the two of them could react.
The two female shadow guards widened their eyes and opened their mouths in an O shape, but they remembered that they could not make a sound to disturb MO Ruyue.
Give me that!
MO Ruyue pointed at the scissors in the basin of surgical instruments. One of the female shadow guards quickly took it and handed it to MO Ruyue.
Wipe your sweat.
The other immediately came over and gently wiped the sweat off MO Ruyues forehead.
The two of them were under MO Ruyuesmand, but nothing went wrong. After a while, the two of them did not dare to look. MO Ruyue was scratching Consort Lis belly, but they were curious about what she was going to do.
MO Ruyue pressed her hands on both sides of Consort Lis stomach, and a bloody baby emerged. The babys small hands were waving in the air.
When the two saw this scene, they heaved a sigh of relief. The Emperors heir was safe!
MO Ruyue moved so quickly that she almost forgot to breathe. She mped the bleeding spots on Consort Lis stomach with a hemostatic forceps before she heaved a sigh of relief.
She picked up the babys feet with one hand and made him stand upside down on the soles of his feet. The baby cried loudly.
At this moment, the baby spat out some of the remaining water in his mouth.
When MO Ruyue put the baby down, she reached her fingers into the babys mouth and gently dug out the remaining water. Her movements were smooth and fluid. She squeezed the water out of the babys mouth and cut the umbilical cord in just a few seconds.
She had to hurry, Consort Lis stomach was still waiting for her.
Then, one of the shadow guards carried the baby while the other one stared at MO Ruyue with wide eyes and did not blink the entire time. She looked at MO Ruyues every movement and realized that a womans stomach could be sewed back up like a piece of clothing. Moreover, there were severalyers of stitches on the inside and outside. This was even more terrifying than asking them to kill someone.
The scariest thing was that Consort Li was still able to talk to them. She looked at the childs gentle face, and MO Ruyues actions on her stomach seemed to be fake, as if it was someone elses stomach. Consort Li did not seem to feel the slightest pain.
It had been almost an hour since everything was done. MO Ruyue made a final inspection and found that all her instruments were outside, and the number of clothes used to stop the bleeding was correct.
How does Consort Li feel now?
Much better. Much better than before. Thank you.
The two shadow guards were already used to seeing Consort Li speak to MO Ruyue normally. But, did Consort Lis stomach really not hurt?
In about an hour, the wound will hurt. If you cant help it, tell me.
MO Ruyue then used a cotton cloth to wipe the blood off the babys body. The babys skin was a little red and not very fleshy because he was not even a month old. MO Ruyue examined him carefully and found that the baby was quite healthy. Overall, he was doing well.
The main reason was that peoples parents had good genes. Even a baby could tell that he would definitely be a handsome boy in the future. Congrattions to the Empress for giving birth to a prince.
Thank you, thank you.
Consort Li already knew that it was a boy, but she was sincerely grateful to MO Ruyue. Even if she was about to die, she would be satisfied.
You can carry the child out now and tell the Emperor to change Consort Lis room to a clean one.
The shadow guard who was carrying the baby was overjoyed when she heard MO Ruyues words. She carefully carried the prince out of the room. The Eldest Prince was too soft and small. She was a little afraid and it was better to let go of him as soon as possible.
Ji Hong was very excited when he saw the baby. He had a prince!
When he heard that Consort Li was still awake, the huge rock in his heart was also put down.
He ordered the pce maids to quickly change Consort Lis room ording to MO Ruyues instructions.
When Consort Li came out of the delivery room, the Emperor took a look and saw that she was indeed awake. He said that it had been hard on her and Consort Li was so touched that her eyes were filled with tears.
MO Ruyue looked at Consort Lis expression andined in her heart. The women in the pce were really pitiful. Not only did they have to fight with several women for a man at the same time, but they also had to think of ways to please the man every day. After giving birth to the child that they had risked their lives to give birth to, they only got a word of thanks and were so touched.
It was true that everyone had their own preferences. Perhaps these people liked this kind of life.
She couldnt help but say, You must take care of Consort Li ording to my request. Consort Li can only eat after she has been vented. Especially the doors and windows. You cant close them tightly all day long.
MO Ruyue, Ji Hong, and the two female shadow guards carefully exined the things they had to take note of. Before she could finish her sentence, her legs suddenly gave up, and she copsed weakly.
Ji Hong reacted quickly and caught MO Ruyue, who was about to faint.
MO Ruyue, whats wrong?
Quickly call the Imperial Doctor!
Immediately, a young eunuch agreed and went to find the Imperial Doctor..
Chapter 476 - 476: Don’ t Cry Until You See the Coffin
Chapter 476: Don?t Cry Until You See the Coffin
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ji Hong panicked when he saw MO Ruyues pale face. He subconsciously made a gesture to catch her. Seeing this, the pce maids lowered their heads and dared not look at her.
MO Ruyue only cked out for a moment and her legs went soft. She regained her senses and quickly stood up from Ji Hongs embrace.
Theres no need to find a doctor. Prepare the Manchu Han Imperial Feast!
MO Ruyue felt weak. She thought that she should have said something full of vigor and power, but it sounded like soft words. She felt disgusted when she heard it. She frowned and felt a little embarrassed.
Ji Hong immediately nodded and looked at MO Ruyue nervously.
What is the Manchu Han Imperial Feast? Tell me and Ill get someone to prepare it immediately.
Men, quickly prepare the Manchu Han Imperial Feast!
However, when the chambein beside him heard Ji Hongs words, he was so frightened that he hurriedly knelt down and kowtowed.
Your Majesty, this servant doesnt know what the Manchu Han Imperial Feast is. Please forgive me, Your Majesty!
MO Ruyue rubbed her temples, trying to wake herself up.
Give me a portion of the best food in your pce. Im hungry.
At this moment, MO Ruyue only felt that she was too embarrassed. Ji Hong and the young eunuch who was kneeling on the ground finally understood what was going on. Ji Hongs heart ached again when he understood.
MO Ruyue had told him that she had been brought here by an old man before she had even eaten her breakfast.
If he knew who invited MO Ruyue, he would skin him alive!
Did you hear that? Hurry up and go!
The kneeling chambein saw the Emperors extremely gloomy expression
and hurriedly kowtowed to him. He went to the imperial kitchen as fast as he could.
Give me a bowl of sugar water first.
MO Ruyue realized that her hands were shaking. She was afraid that she would faint again before the food arrived.
As soon as she finished her sentence, a pce maid rushed to make MO Ruyue some sugar water. It was served to her in a short while. The temperature was just right. MO Ruyue drank it all in one gulp and felt alive again.
It was almost lunch time. MO Ruyue had been performing the surgery on Consort Li, so she had used up a lot of her energy. Moreover, she hadnt even had a sip of water sincest night, so she had low blood sugar.
Just as she finished drinking the sugar water, Ji Hong thought about how those people in the imperial kitchen were so indecisive and ipetent. This time, he had to rece them all.
All of a sudden, arge group of pce maids appeared. Each pce maid was holding a tray in their hands, and the tray contained delicious food. They looked expressionless, but in fact, their feet under the hem of their skirts were moving very quickly. In a short while, the table was filled.
When the first pce maid opened the lid, MO Ruyue couldnt help but reach out and pinch a piece of meat into her mouth.
Seeing this, the pce maids lowered their heads and did not dare to look anymore, afraid that they would be implicated in the Emperors rage.
However, Ji Hong sat beside MO Ruyue and watched her eat with a smile on his face.
There were a total of one hundred and eight dishes. MO Ruyue only tasted a few mouthfuls of each dish before she was full. The taste of your chef in the imperial kitchen is quite good.
Ive already eaten all of these. Isnt it a waste?
Why dont we
MO Ruyue had originally thought that she would pack all these up and eat them slowly when she was hungry. This was made by the imperial kitchen. Although there were not many seasonings, the chefs in the imperial kitchen were different. They made almost all the original vors and were very delicious.
No, Im hungry too. Ji Hong said.
Ji Hong picked up his chopsticks and picked up the dish closest to him. He put it into his mouth and chewed slowly.
He had been watching MO Ruyue eat, but he hadnt moved. In fact, he had already felt hungry when he saw MO Ruyue eating so sweetly.
The Emperors actions shocked the pce maids and eunuchs who had just raised their heads a little. They were so frightened that they wished they could lower their heads to their feet.
What is the Emperor doing?
The Emperor is eating the leftovers of others!
This matter must not be revealed, not even if they were beaten to death. If it was revealed, they would die!
Im going to stay here for seven days. Ill leave after Consort Li is fine. Ille back for a check-up a monthter. If nothing unexpected happens, Consort Li should bepletely healed.
MO Ruyue saw Ji Hong chewing and swallowing slowly, so she began to talk about her ns.
Okay, Ill get someone to prepare a ce for you.
Theres no need to specially prepare. Im staying next to Consort Li, so its convenient to take care of her.
Yes.
The Empress has arrived!
The pce maids and eunuchs knelt down to wee the Empress.
Greetings, Empress Qian Sui!
Stand up.
This concubine greets the Emperor. How is little sister Consort Li?
MO Ruyue was standing up unwillingly to greet the Empress when Ji Hong raised his hand to stop her.
Youve worked hard for Consort Li. Go and rest.
The Emperor was the most important. Since he had already said so, how could MO Ruyue be so shameless as to insist on going to greet the Empress? Besides, she had a huge grudge against the Empress!
Yes, then Ill go down.
Impudent!
The Emperor had not allowed MO Ruyue to greet the Empress, so she was so angry that her fingers had dug into her palms. Seeing that MO Ruvue had treated her as air and even addressed herself as me to the Emperor, she had caught onto something.
How dare you!
Ji Hong threw the chopsticks in front of the Empress feet, scaring the Empress into kneeling down.
Emperor, please forgive me!
Go ahead. If theres anything, just tell them.
Ji Hong ignored the Empress and let her kneel there. He then turned to MO Ruyue with a pleasant expression.
MO Ruyue knew that she and the Empress had formed a death knot, but she was not afraid. She let the pce maid take her to Consort Lis residence. After MO Ruyue left, the Emperors expression became even uglier than before.
He didnt even look at the Empress, but coldly spat out a sentence.
Take the Empress into Xihua Pce!
The Empress was so shocked that she raised her head, thinking that she had misheard. Xihua Pce was a dpidated courtyard in the westernmost part of the rear pce It was cold and damp, and no one lived there all year round. It was eerie and scary. During the day, the pce maids and eunuchs were unwilling to pass by. Only the concubines who had made a big mistake would be driven there and left to fend for themselves. That was actually the Cold Pce.
As soon as Ji Hong finished speaking, two female officials came over to pick up the Empress and were about to leave. The Empress immediately struggled.
Emperor, why?
Just because of that woman, just because I said she was impudent, the Emperor wants to banish me into the Cold Pce?
Ji Hong saw that the Empress would not shed tears until she saw the coffin. Although she had guessed correctly, it was only half. I believe you know better than me how Consort Li fell.
Take her away!
The two pce maids quickly dragged the Empress out, no matter how the Empress shouted.
Arent you afraid that my father
The Empress shouted out this sentence in a moment of desperation. However, as soon as she said this, her scalp went numb.
It was over!
Originally, her father might have been able to save her, but after she shouted this sentence, it was probably even more certain. But she hated it. She had only been married to the Emperor for a month and had only been the Empress for a month, and she was already banished to the Cold Pce. Wouldnt this make the whole worldugh at her?
No. You cant treat me like this
Ji Hongs heart was in turmoil when he heard the Empress words, but he remained calm on the surface.
Without my permission, no one is allowed to visit Cold Pce. Those who disobey will be beheaded!
He was worried that he could not punish the Empress, but now the Empress had personally sent him a great crime..
Chapter 477 - 477: Three Death Exemption Medallions
Chapter 477: Three Death Exemption Medallions
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue gave Consort Li a prescription for a pain-relieving soup and asked the shadow guards to bring it over and boil it. Consort Li would definitely drink itter.
She went to see Consort Li again and asked about the situation. Perhaps it was because Consort Li had given birth to a son, but she did not have any reaction at the moment. Her mental state was quite good.
MO Ruyue asked Consort Li to rest as much as she could while she wanted to rest for a while. However, a eunuch had brought a lot of pce maids in.
It was because Consort Li gave birth to the Eldest Prince and the Emperors reward had arrived. Consort Li was also promoted to the Imperial Consort.
The same promotion and rewards were also given to Imperial Concubine Lis family.
Coincidentally, Imperial Concubine Lis father was the Great General who had taken care of Gu Ying in the past.
Your Highness, you should pay more attention during your confinement. Its best not to cry, or youll fall sick after confinement.
After hearing MO Ruyues words, Imperial Concubine Li hurriedly nodded and stopped crying. However, she was very touched and looked at her son, who was sleeping beside her, with iparable happiness and satisfaction.
After the reward was given, the other concubines who came to congratte her were all stopped. Only then did Imperial Concubine Li rest in peace. She did not need to breastfeed the child. The royal family had a special nanny, and the concubines were not allowed to breastfeed themselves.
That afternoon, Imperial Concubine Lis family came to visit her. This was Ji Hongs idea. He was afraid that something was wrong with Imperial Concubine Li and that she wouldnt even be able to see her family for thest time.
MO Ruyue looked at the dozen or so people who hade over and was so frightened that she hurriedly stopped them outside Imperial Concubine Lis bedchamber.
You cant go in together.
When the two shadow guards saw MO Ruyues actions, they immediately stood on her left and right, blocking the door.
If I want to see Wan Er, why wont you let me in? It was the Emperor who asked us to meet her.
This old madam was in her forties and was full of vigor. Seeing that MO Ruyue did not allow her to enter, she immediately raised her eyebrows but did not barge in.
Thisdy is like this. Because the Imperial Concubine is different from a normal pregnant woman, now is the weakest time. If too many people go in at once, it will disturb the Imperial Concubine.
It will also bring in the evil wind outside, which is very disadvantageous to the Imperial Concubine.
Then we cant go in?
Behind them, a slightly younger madam, who was about thirty years old, quickly stepped forward to stop the furious old madam and asked MO Ruyue in a friendly tone.
Yes.
You can only go in two at a time, but you have to change into a set of clean clothes and wash your hands. After you go in, try not to touch the Imperial Concubine. Dont get too close to the bed either. Just say a few words to her ande out. After all, the Imperial Concubine has just given birth and her body is very weak.
The madams understood what MO Ruyue said. Although they were still unwilling, the health of the Imperial Consort was important. She was their daughter. Everyone carefully followed MO Ruyues instructions.
Imperial Concubine Li had fallen asleep, but they did not wake her up. When they went in to take a look, they saw that her face was pale, and all of them were so distressed that tears welled up in their eyes, especially the old madam.
When she went in and saw her, her tears fell like a broken string of pearls. Even so, she did not have the heart to call out to her daughter. Instead, after taking a look, she quickly pulled MO Ruyue out and asked.
How is the Imperial Concubine?
MO Ruyue was about to speak when one of the shadow guards answered.
Old Madam, you dont have to worry about Imperial Consort. This was unavoidable from the first day of weakness. Moreover, the fetus was not in the right position. It took a lot of effort to give birth. After a period of good rest, she will definitely recover.
As the shadow guard spoke, she pulled MO Ruyue and squeezed her hand. MO Ruyue wasnt a fool. She probably didnt want the Imperial Consorts family to know that it was a caesarian operation. It might cause a panic.
When Imperial Concubine Lis family saw that their daughter was sleeping there, they could not stay in the pce any longer. Before they left, they found out that MO Ruyue was the one who delivered the baby for Imperial Concubine
Li. The old madams attitude immediately changed 180 degrees and gently held MO Ruyues hand.
Then Ill have to trouble Doctor MO to take care of you. This old one will be eternally grateful!
Old Madam is too polite. This is what I should do.
MO Ruyue was overwhelmed by the old madams sudden enthusiasm.
Then how long do I have to wait to see the Imperial Consort again?
MO Ruyue thought for a moment and said, Old Madam, you cane and visit often. Itll be helpful to the Imperial Concubines recovery. Im sure the Imperial Concubine misses you too.
Oh, good, good, good. Thats good, thats good. Then well leave first. We wont disturb the Imperial Concubines rest.
Imperial Concubine Lis family had been here for an hour, but Imperial Concubine Li had not woken up and had left in a hurry.
The chambein quickly reported to the Emperor and told them everything that MO Ruyue had told them.
Before the Imperial Consort recovers, everything in the Imperial Consorts
Pce will be done ording to Doctor Mos instructions.
After Ji Hong gave his orders, the chambein left. For a moment, everyone in Imperial Concubine Lis pce looked at MO Ruyue before they started to do anything.
MO Ruyue did not understand them, but she also felt that Imperial Concubine Li was too weak. Why did these pce maids and eunuchs not have any opinions?
That night, Imperial Concubine Li could not fall asleep because of the pain from her incision. The lights in the Imperial Concubines bedroom were on all night.
MO Ruyue went to bed after midnight. When she woke up the next day, the sky was already bright. She hurriedly tidied herself up and was about to leave the pce when she was stopped.
Behind the two chambeins, there were a few guards wielding sabers. They walked up to MO Ruyue and greeted her. The chambeins carried a tray over. The red cloth on the tray was lifted, revealing three golden death-exemption medallions.
MO Ruyue picked one up and looked at it. There were words engraved on the back C MO Ruyues Exclusive Use.
MO Ruyue found it unbelievable. This Ji Hong was truly sincere. He gave her three death-exemption medals, and they were only for her own use.
The chambein saw the meaning on MO Ruyues face and hurriedly exined with a smile.
Doctor MO, this is the case. This death-exemption medallion can only be used by yourself or whoever you say you want to use it. Other than that) it is useless to anyone else.
MO Ruyue understood. He was afraid that someone else would pick it up if she lost it. At least Ji Hong had some conscience.
She had saved his wife and sons life once and saved him twice. She had
exchanged it for three death exemption tokens. Not bad!
MO Ruyue took out the dragon-shaped jade pendant and ced it on the tray.
When the chambein saw the thing clearly, he was so frightened that his hands trembled and he almost dropped the tray on the ground. He steadied himself tightly, and his back was already drenched in sweat.
Doctor MO, this
Oh, this is what the Emperor promised to give me before. Now that the death-exemption medallion has been delivered, this jade pendant naturally has to be returned to the Emperor.
Oh right, please help me thank the emperor. Im going out for a while and will be back in the afternoon.
What about the Imperial Concubine?
The chambein braced himself and risked his life to ask another question.
The Imperial Concubine is doing quite well for the time being.
The chambein replied with relief and went to reply to the Emperor.
Before MO Ruyue left, she had also instructed the two female shadow guards to look for her if there were any problems. She had to go out today.
When MO Ruyue reached the pce gate, another guard ran over and handed her a token that allowed her to enter and leave the pce as she pleased. MO Ruyue put the three death-exemption medallions into her bosom without hesitation. They were already quite heavy, but the addition of the waist token made them even heavier.
Thank you so much!
Chapter 478 - 478: It’s Time to Make a Move
Chapter 478: Its Time to Make a Move
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue kept walking toward the examination hall. She had already asked the two shadow guards about the location. The examinees woulde out at noon.
It was quite dangerous to deliver Consort Li yesterday. Moreover, it was the first time she had done a cesarean section. She was nervous. Fortunately, she did not make any mistakes, but she did not forget why she came to the capital. There was still some time before the examination venue would open. MO Ruyue went straight to the inn opposite the examination venue and sat down to drink tea. The weather was hot now, so she would not stand outside and wait foolishly.
After MO Ruyue drank the third pot of tea, she saw that the examinees were about to leave the examination hall. However, she felt like urinating, so she went to the toilet in the inn. There were many people waiting for her.
F*ck!
It wasnt far from the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency, and they could go home in less than fifteen minutes by carriage. She felt that she could hold it in for a while more.
At this moment, the examinees had already started to head out one after another. MO Ruyue did not want to miss the opportunity to pick up Xue Cheng.
She had speciallye to give GuYing a surprise, and she had to do it without Gu Yings knowledge. Otherwise, she would lose the meaning of her trip to the capital.
MO Ruyue hurriedly called the waiter over to pay the bill and immediately went downstairs.
When she went downstairs, she nced out of the window at the entrance of the examination hall and happened to see a familiar figure who looked slightly ruined.
For some reason, he was a little excited at this moment.
At this moment, the entrance of the examination hall was filled with the examinees errand boys or family members. It was very crowded.
There were also many who fainted as soon as they left the examination hall.
These people were experienced in this scene. There were doctors preparing early in the morning, and there were many medical apprentices waiting at the entrance of the examination hall. When they saw someone faint, they immediately went forward andmunicated with those people to go to their medical center. It was also a way to attract business.
MO Ruyue heaved a sigh of relief when she saw the situation. She had been struggling to decide whether she should go forward to save him, but it seemed that her thoughts were unnecessary. She quickly looked around for the familiar figure.
In the end, she could not find him no matter how hard she searched. When she went downstairs, she clearly saw Gu Yinging in this direction.
That cant be. Im just going downstairs.
Just as MO Ruyue decided to return to the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency, someone patted her on the back.
MO Ruyue felt a little frustrated. When she turned around and saw Gu Yings incredulous face, she heaved a sigh of relief and smiled.
Ive been looking for you for a long time. I thought you went back. Lets go back quickly!
However, the next moment, she fell into a slightly rancid embrace.
In fact, Gu Ying had already met with the people from the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency who hade to pick him up. Among them was the servant girl who had been serving MO Ruyue. When the maidservant saw Gu Ying crying bitterly, she told him about how MO Ruyue had entered the pce to deliver Consort Lis child. Gu Ying felt as if his scalp was going to explode.
He was thinking of going to the Generals house to look for her. If anything happened to Consort Li, could he bail MO Ruyue out for his sake?
Imperial Concubine Li was the Great Generals daughter.
Before Gu Ying left, he casually turned around and saw a familiar figure. He walked over and tried to pat her. That person turned around and was indeed MO Ruyue.
At this moment, Gu Ying felt like he had regained what he had lost. He did not care if they were outside or if other people were looking at him strangely. He subconsciously pulled MO Ruyue into his arms.
MO Ruyue felt like her dder was about to explode!
Aiya, your heart is beating a little fast. Are you feeling a little dizzy? Have you not eaten well these past few days? Hurry up and dont stand here. It doesnt smell good with so many people. Lets go back to the Bodyguard Agency quickly.
MO Ruyue felt that perhaps Gu Ying was unable to stand steadily. Seeing a familiar face, she wanted to use it to stand firm. She did not think too much about it. Listening to his irregr heartbeat, she concluded that he might have low blood sugar because her heart rate would increase when her blood sugar was low.
However, she almost peed her pants after being hugged and strangled by him. She couldnt stay here any longer. With peopleing and going, she felt that her dder had reached its limit.
Alright, lets go back.
Gu Ying led MO Ruyue to see the carriage of the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency. MO Ruyue heaved a sigh of relief and immediately rushed back to her small courtyard after returning to the Bodyguard Agency to resolve the three most urgent matters in her life!
When MO Ruyue came out, she saw that everyone was waiting for her. She guessed that everyone knew what she had been doing. She didnt look embarrassed at all. Who didnt eat, drink, and poop?
Without waiting for them to ask, MO Ruyue directly told them everything that had happened in the pce. Of course, she did not openly tell Gu Ying about the caesarian section in public.
She was going back to the pce in a while. After all, the Imperial Consort was still in a critical period. If she had note to fetch Guying, she should not have left.
After you go to meet the Emperor tomorrow, go back and tell them not to
worry about me.
Ill wait for you to go home together.
Before MO Ruyue could finish her sentence, Gu Ying made his decision.
How could he abandon her and go back alone? What kind of person would he be then?
The moment he learned that MO Ruyue hade to pick him up from the examination hall, his mood soared.
Even if MO Ruyue did note here specifically for him, he would not abandon her at this time, not to mention that she was going to the pce.
Gu Ying felt uneasy when he thought of the person in the pce. He looked at MO Ruyue and suppressed his thoughts. He only hoped that these few days would pass quickly.
Thats fine too. You can go back and study first. Otherwise, theyll be worried if we dont go home for a long time.
MO Ruyue could write herself, but her handwriting was too ugly.
Alright, you dont have to worry about that.
She returned to her room and took out a bundle.
Here, this is the change of clothes that Xiao Fei prepared for you.
Gu Ying took it.
Then Ill be leaving. Ille back in five days.
Arent you going to leave after dinner?
No, I have to go back quickly. Besides, the food in the pce is also delicious. Its a waste not to eat it. They cant let me work for nothing. I have to eat it back.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Gu Yings eyes curved into a smile. He knew that MO Ruyue would definitely feel sorry for not being able to collect the medical fees this time.
I will wait for you at the pce gate in five days. Be careful in the pce. If there is anything, you must let someone tell me.
Actually, theres no need.
Go quickly. Dont waste time.
MO Ruyue said, Alright.
After MO Ruyue left, Gu Ying asked someone to prepare a bath for him. He wanted to take a good bath. After washing up, he did not put on the clothes prepared by the bodyguard agency. Instead, he opened the bundle and took out a piece of clothing. A letter fell out of it.
He opened it and saw that it was written by Qin Qingfei and Xue Qing. Qin
Qingfeis words were very simple.
Brother, hurry up and marry Sister-inw.
Xue Qings words were even more straightforward. Im now more than a month pregnant. Big Brother cant fall too far behind. Otherwise, if Father and Mother find out, they will probably lift the coffin and beat you up.
Gu Yings lips curled up as he read the letter. He thought of MO Ruyues anxious look when she was looking for him at the entrance of the examination hall. His heart was filled with her figure.
She was now in the pce, and that person in the pce must be eyeing her like a tiger eyeing its prey. Just thinking about it made his heart burn with anxiety.
It seemed like it was time to make a move.
If he wanted to wait for that silly girl to understand his feelings, he estimated that it would take a long time. It was enough to give her such a long time..
Chapter 479 - 479: Climbing Up
Chapter 479: Climbing Up
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
On the other hand, MO Ruyue hastened her horse back to the pce. She changed her clothes first, then rudely instructed the little pce maid beside her to wash her hands.
Hurry up and get me something to eat. Im starving.
The little pce maid was also a clever one. Upon hearing MO Ruyues words, she guessed that she must not have eaten lunch, so she hurriedly went out to give instructions.
Hey, I dont want too many dishes. Four or five is enough.
MO Ruyue did not know if the little pce maid had heard her, but she had
gone to visit Imperial Concubine Li.
Imperial Concubine Li was drinking ginseng and ck-bone chicken soup under the service of the shadow guards.
Seeing that MO Ruyue had returned, she hurriedly smiled at her.
Imperial Concubine Li was a beautiful person. Even though her face and lips were pale, her smile still had the beauty of a sick beauty. Imperial Concubine Li had breathed out in the morning.
Does it still hurt?
Imperial Concubine Li shook her head. In fact, it still hurt. How could it not hurt? It was just that it did not hurt as much as it didst night.
Suddenly, her expression changed. The two female shadow guards hurriedly cleaned up for her.
Imperial Concubine Li peed again.
This was the second time that she had urinated a lot after drinking the soup in the morning, and Imperial Concubine Li herself still couldnt feel it.
Actually, it was the pain from the scar that distracted her. By the time she felt it, she had already peed.
MO Ruyue watched the situation from the side and thought to herself that she had been too careless.
Imperial Concubine Li was the first human cesarean section she had performed. She promised that the next time she had a cesarean section, this situation would definitely not happen.
After the two shadow guards had finished changing the bedsheets for Imperial Concubine Li, MO Ruyue beckoned one of the shadow guards over.
Go to the sewing room and get some high-quality cotton, clean cotton cloth, waterproof rain cloth, and needles and thread. Bring some over. Soon, the things that MO Ruyue wanted were all brought over.
It didnt take long for MO Ruyue to make an adults diaper.
Fortunately, the things in the pce were meant for the masters. The cotton would be cleaned in advance, so they were rtively clean. MO Ruyue still added some disinfectant herbal powder.
She soaked or boiled the rest in disinfectant before taking them out to the sun. When those are all dried, get the sewing room to make them all like this.
Oh, right. Theres another one.
MO Ruyue quickly made another sanitary pad.
This is used during thete-stage orchidectomy.
If it was dirty, it had to be changed.
In theter stages, you have to use some disinfectant herbs to treat it before using it.
Imperial Concubine Li had just given birth. If she did not improve hygiene in the near future, it would easily cause infection.
The two shadow guards were also women. When they saw the sanitary pads made by MO Ruyue, their eyes widened in curiosity.
They had never used such a sanitary pad before. As women, they knew how to use it and how convenient it was when they saw it.
The two Shadow Guards were really dutiful. They didnt even ask such idle questions that they shouldnt ask. They just looked around and pondered.
MO Ruyue could tell that the two shadow guards were curious.
This can also be used during our period.
When the timees, you can make it yourself. Its very convenient.
If you are toozy to do it, you could go to Reliance Town and buy more at once.
I have a shop in Reliance Town that specializes in this. Moreover, all the things we make are soaked in disinfectant. It will relieve some menstrual cramps.
So far, everyone who has used it has said its good.
MO Ruyue had just thought of opening a shop in the capital. However, she decided against it when she thought about the fact that there were too many powerful people in the capital. After all, she was just amoner.
Can we do this ourselves?
The shadow guard thought that since MO Ruyue was the one who made this, and she was also a doctor, she should be able to make something rted to medicine. Could they do it too?
Of course you can.
Not to mention, it feels quitefortable under my body.
Imperial Concubine Li felt that the adult diapers made by MO Ruyue were quite useful.
It was soft. Even if she couldnt hold it in for a while, she wasnt afraid of dirtying the bed.
Thank you, Doctor MO!
The two shadow guards looked at each other like they were looking at a treasure. Every time they had their period, they would only hate themselves for not being men.
Women were most annoyed by these things. When they talked about this Imperial Concubine, they forgot that their scars were hurting, and the two shadow guards were no longer as stubborn as before.
Seeing that they were interested, MO Ruyue shared with them in detail some things that women should pay attention to. She also shared the benefits of sanitary pads, opening up a new world for the three women.
Immediately, Imperial Concubine Li expressed that she would order her sanitary pads from MO Ruyue in the future.
At night, Imperial Concubine Li felt a little feverish. MO Ruyue was also busy the whole night and could not sleep.
MO Ruyue was relieved to see that Concubine Lis fever had subsided by the wee hours of the morning and that she had been fine ever since.
Five dayster, Imperial Concubine Lis wound recovered well. As long as she didnt touch it on purpose, she wouldnt feel any pain. All that was left was to slowly recover.
MO Ruyue had used catgut sutures back then, so there was no need to remove the stitches. They would be slowly absorbed.
During this time, Imperial Concubine Lis family came to visit again. Seeing that Imperial Concubine Li had recovered well, the entire family was deeply grateful to MO Ruyue.
They had only heard about Imperial Concubine Lis difficultbor after they had returned. She had fallen and given birth prematurely.
The Imperial Concubines elder brother and uncleunched a fierce revenge against the Empresss power.
Your Majesty, you must remember to walk around often. This way, it will be more convenient to drain the lochia.
Doctor MO, dont worry. There are servants watching over you.
Today was the day that MO Ruyue was going to leave the pce. Before she left the pce, she gave Imperial Concubine Li a thorough check-up.
Imperial Concubine Lis wound had almostpletely absorbed the catgut. The only reason she could recover so quickly was because the Emperor had brought all kinds of precious herbs. All of them were of the highest quality, so the effect was naturally iparable.
Imperial Concubine Li could get off the bed without the help of a pce maid, and she didnt feel particrly ufortable.
Before MO Ruyue left, Imperial Concubine Li had given her a lot of things. There were tworge carriages, precious medicinal herbs, jewelry, cloth, brocade, and everything else.
She knew how many children MO Ruyue had at home, and she had even specially prepared gifts for them.
Ever since Imperial Concubine Li had her own child, her maternal instincts had grown stronger. When she learned that it was not easy for MO Ruyue to take care of the children alone, she wished that MO Ruyue could bring the children to live in the pce.
MO Ruyue had no choice but to ept it. After all, she was the Imperial Concubine, and she could only ept the gifts given to her.
MO Ruyue epted the gifts and was about to kneel down to express her gratitude when Imperial Concubine Li personally went forward to help her up.
If it werent for you, my son and I might have not ended up like this. If you dont mind, then treat me as your elder sister. You dont need to see those outside courtesies here.
Imperial Concubine Li was two months older than MO Ruyue.
When MO Ruyue heard that there was such a good thing, she didnt care if it was against the rules or not. This was what the Imperial Concubine herself said, so she climbed up the pole.
I hope Imperial Concubine Li doesnt mind as this younger sister shamelessly epted it.
The two sisters were reluctant to part for a while. Imperial Concubine Li saw that it was gettingte.
Granny, help me send my sister off. Its not convenient for me to do so.
Otherwise, Ill send her off personally.
That wont do.
No need for granny to send me off. Granny should stay behind to take care of
Sister, I can go out myself.
Just listen to me. Come and visit me more often when you have time.
Imperial Concubine Li really liked MO Ruyue. She was born into a family and did not like people who were pretentious.
Ill definitelye and visit you more often. If you ever leave the pce to y, you can also go to Reliance Town. Ill definitely give you the best hospitality.
Imperial Concubine Li knew that MO Ruyue was going back in a month. She had been longing to go back home since she heard MO Ruyue talking about it. If theres a chance, Ill definitely go. When the timees, dont despise me..
Chapter 480 - 480: He Can ‘t Cower
Chapter 480: He Can t Cower
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
In the end, MO Ruyue was escorted out of the pce by Imperial Concubine Lis nanny. This scene shocked everyone in the pce.
However, during these seven days, the people in the pce had heard a lot about MO Ruyue. Not only was this person skilled in medicine, but she was also doted on by the Emperor and the Imperial Concubine.
On the way out of the pce, the pce maids and eunuchs who knew MO Ruyue greeted her when they saw her.
The nanny wanted to send MO Ruyue out of the pce gate, but MO Ruyue told her to hurry back and take care of the Imperial Concubine.
The little pce maid took her out of the pce.
MO Ruyue saw a familiar figure as soon as she arrived at the pce gate.
Gu Ying had been waiting at the pce gate since morning, afraid that if MO Ruyue didnte out today, there would be more changes.
He saw that there were many eunuchs following behind MO Ruyue, carrying various brocade boxes and many carrying cloth. He knew that these were rewards for MO Ruyue from the pce.
He heaved a sigh of relief when he saw these things. The fact that MO Ruyue had received such a generous reward meant that she had been living quite well in the pce these past few days.
The eunuchs followed MO Ruyues instructions and ced all the items in the carriage beside Gu Ying. However, they did not put them down and called for another carriage.
Gu Ying did not say anything to MO Ruyue as there were too many people on the road.
When they arrived at the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency, Gu Ying beckoned for two people to help him unload the things on the carriage.
You rest, well do it.
Are you doing well in the pce? Is anyone making things difficult for you?
Look at me, I brought two carriages of things back. Does it look like someone is making things difficult for me?
Yes, our MO Ruyue is the best!
MO Ruyue was a little embarrassed by Gu Yings sudden child-like praise.
Have you sent a letter to your family?
I still have to wait for more than twenty days before I can go home. Why dont you go back first?
You dont have to worry about these things at home. Youre still worried with Little Feiqing and the others at home. Qinger has gone to live at home.
What? That Hua Jianan must be running home every day. Ive really troubled them. Ill definitely bring them a few more gifts when I get back.
Alright, Ill go with you.
Take this month as a vacation in the capital. When youre free, Ill bring you to Xiangguo Temple.
We can even make it in time for the Mid-Autumn Festival here. It will definitely be very lively this year.
MO Ruyue wanted to say that she didnt like crowded ces. However, it wasnt easy for her toe here, and she probably wouldnte back again in the future. It was not a bad idea to go and take a look.
They packed up their things. It was already dark outside. It was time to rest after having dinner and washing up.
After Gu Ying finished packing, MO Ruyue had already gone to bed.
It seemed that he would not be able to confess tonight.
The next morning, MO Ruyue had just woken up and washed up when another eunuch came over.
When the eunuch saw MO Ruyue, he smiled and opened the imperial edict in his hand.
By the Emperors decree. MO Ruyue had saved the Emperor twice, and now she had saved Imperial Concubine Li and her son. All of this was because of MO Ruyues excellent medical skills. MO Ruyue was kind-hearted and benevolent, saving the people from suffering. She always let those who were tortured by illness and fell into darkness see a trace of gentle moonlight. Therefore, MO Ruyue was specially named Princess Ming Yue!
Lianshan County will be Princess Ming Yues food city. I hope Princess Ming Yues medical skills will improve and benefit more people!
MO Ruyue was stunned. The surprise made her dizzy.
Gu Ying was also stunned, and everyone from the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency was even more stunned.
The eunuch held the imperial edict and waited for a long time, but MO Ruyue still did not receive it. Seeing that she looked a little lost, he knew that she must have been overwhelmed by surprise. He hurriedly took a small step forward and gently said, Princess Ming Yue, please ept the decree.
MO Ruyue came back to her senses and hurriedly raised her hands above her head to receive the imperial edict.
Thank you, Emperor. Long live, Emperor!
The eunuch smiled at MO Ruyue, thinking that she would be the favorite of the Emperor and the Imperial Concubine in the future. Even if he couldnt curry favor with her, he definitely couldnt offend her.
Princess Ming Yue, this servant will take his leave.
Eunuch, stay for a meal before you leave.
He had given her an imperial edict to reward her. No matter what, she had to ask him to stay for a meal and a cup of tea, right?
This was also MO Ruyues habitual phrase.
This servant thanks Princess Ming Yue for her kind treatment, but this servant still has to rush back to the pce to report to the Emperor. Im afraid that this servant will have to disappoint Princess Ming Yue.
Oh, its fine. Then you should hurry back and report to the Emperor. Help me thank the Emperor.
This servant will obey.
Just as the eunuch was leaving, Gu Ying stepped forward and stuffed arge banknote into the eunuchs hand.
The eunuchs were used to doing such work. Moreover, this kind of joyous task, everyone would fight to the death for the sake of giving tips.
The eunuch happily epted it.
Thank you, Xue Zhuangyuan. This servant will take his leave.
After the eunuch left, MO Ruyue stared at Gu Ying with wide eyes, and Gu Ying stared at MO Ruyue with wide eyes.
Their identities had changed, so they entered the house and sat down.
MO Ruyue was still holding the imperial edict in her hand, but she did not know where to put it. It seemed like she had to go back to the vige and worship it at home.
She looked at Gu Ying. You go first.
Thats right. Just as youve heard, I was the top scorer of this years exam. However, because I cant stay in the capital to be an official, I cant go out to work either, so I retreated to the second ce.
Gu Ying answered honestly.
Why dont you be an official?
Then what kind of scientific examination are you doing?
When MO Ruyue heard that Gu Ying was the top scorer in the examination, but he had retreated to the second ce, she was so angry that she smashed the table. She remembered that it was an imperial edict in her hand and quickly picked it up again. Fortunately, there was no one from the pce here.
For you.
Gu Ying continued MO Ruyues words and said these words naturally. After he finished speaking, he looked at MO Ruyue nervously.
MO Ruyue
She looked at Gu Yings serious eyes and realized that he was not lying. Was this guy serious?
Finished?
This guy couldnt have fallen in love with me, right?
What should she do? What if he wanted to pursue her? How could she reject him?
Seeing that MO Ruyue did not seem to understand, Gu Ying took a deep breath.
He could not retreat.
I took the schr exam for you, I took the top schr exam for you, and I didnt be an official for you. Because you dont like those things.
Really. For me?
Why are you so silly? What does it matter if I like it or not?
Youre not me. You cant go to the battlefield with your legs. Isnt it good to be a civil servant after getting the top schr?
This is something that will bring glory to the family. Why would you give up on it for me?
No matter how slow MO Ruyue was, she had some understanding in her heart. However, she did not dare to think in that direction. Their rtionship could not develop to that extent.
I like you.
Congrattions, Eldest Young Master.
A group of people came in from outside. They were all from the Xue Family
Bodyguard Agency. They were used to calling Gu Ying Eldest Young Master.
They had just gone on a escort trip and hade back with such great news. Their Eldest Young Master had actuallye back with a second-ce score. How could they not be happy?
If Master and Madam knew, they could rest in peace.
However, they had just returned and saw a beautiful woman sitting opposite the Eldest Young Master in the room. The atmosphere between the two of them seemed a little off, and it seemed that they hade at the wrong time. Young Master, if you have something to do, continue. Were just passing by.
Lets go.
There were still many people outside who continued to squeeze over, but they were directly blocked by the person in the lead. He even whispered to them to leave and kept signaling them with his eyes..
Chapter 481 - 481: Taking Care of the Princess’s Estate
Chapter 481: Taking Care of the Princesss Estate
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Big Biao, what happened to your eyes?
The man called Big Biao quickly covered the mans mouth and dragged him away. He even thoughtfully closed the door for them.
What did you just say?
Gu Ying, who was initially a little nervous, saw that MO Ruyue was not like other women. She shyly covered her face and ran away after hearing these words. She even seriously wanted to rify things. Indeed, the girl he liked was different.
I said I like you, I like you, and I want to marry you.
MO Ruyue stood up immediately, the imperial edict in her hand twisted out of shape. Im not getting married.
Gu Ying also stood up and took a step closer to MO Ruyue.
Then Ill marry you.
Anyway, MO Ruyue belonged to their family, so it didnt matter if they got married.
I
Ive exceeded your standards for choosing a spouse.
I dont have parents, so I dont need you to help me raise my siblings.
Cockroach and Xiaowei dont count, theyre raised by you.
MO Ruyue took a step back at Gu Yings words, and Gu Ying took another step forward.
Not only am I a schr, but Im also a second-ce schr now. I wont be an official either. If you want to stay in the vige forever, then Ill apany you to open a hospital and a medicinal cuisine shop in the vige.
I still have a profit-sharing business, and I dont need you to support my family.
You can keep your money, and Ill give you all my money. You can spend it however you want.
Gu Ying took another step forward.
If you dont want to stay in the vige, Ill follow you wherever you want.
If you dont want to have children, I can give up. We already have Zi Xi and Zi Chen anyway.
Gu Ying blurted out all the words in his heart in one breath, and his heart rxed.
He finally told her personally.
He was a little annoyed. Why couldnt the imperial edict be announced after he confessed to MO Ruyue?
Would MO Ruyue think that he was pursuing her because she had be a princess?
This Ji Hong was born to be his nemesis!
Gu Ying nervously waited for MO Ruyues answer.
MO Ruyue had been forced into a corner. At this moment, she was thinking, Damn it. Why do I feel moved when I hear Gu Yings conditions?
But Im your sister-inw.
Youre only in name. You two havent consummated your marriage. In reality, youre not his wife yet.
None of this was important, and no one would talk about it.
Its mainly you.
Gu Ying thought fiercely in his heart. If anyone dared to say anything about their rtionship, he would definitely make that person speechless!
I
You came to Beijing to pick me up because you care about me, dont you?
Dont be in a hurry to deny it. Why dont you try to ept me first?
Give me a chance.
Seeing MO Ruyue speak again, Gu Ying was afraid that she would say something he did not want to hear, so he hurriedly interrupted her.
Actually, there are many girls who are prettier than me, have better personalities, and are better than me in everything. You can take a look at those girls.
MO Ruyue tried to persuade Gu Ying. But they are not you. I like you.
I like the way you look.
I like your temper.
I like the real you.
Mo Ruyue felt that GuYing had suddenly be a master of flirting with girls, and he was the kind that did not show off.
Then give me some time to think about it.
Alright, you can think of anything you want. Ill always be waiting for you.
Gu Ying took the initiative to leave MO Ruyue alone after he finished speaking. He knew that she would be a little flustered.
If it wasnt because he couldnt wait any longer, he wouldnt be so radical.
However, he really didnt want to wait any longer.
Even if she rejected him, he wouldnt regret saying it out loud.
He was d that MO Ruyue did not reject him immediately, which meant that she had thought about it.
However, MO Ruyue did not have much time to think about this matter.
Following the departure of her father-inw, the important figures in the pce sessively sent gifts to her, the newly crowned princess.
First) it was the Emperors, then the Empress Dowagers and Imperial Concubine Lis, and then the other two concubines.
Ji Hong now had a total of four concubines, including the Empress. This was because he had just be the Emperor not long ago and had yet to select a talent.
The other two concubines had not officially met MO Ruyue yet, but they knew how much the Emperor and the Imperial Concubine favored MO Ruyue. Now that the Empress Dowager had given MO Ruyue gifts, they could not pretend that they did not know.
Since the Emperor had conferred MO Ruyue the title of Princess, he had to give her a princess mansion. Thus, he had sent people from the Ministry of Works tomunicate with MO Ruyue.
Ji Hong knew that MO Ruyue didnt like living in the capital, and she was not used to the scheming here. He also didnt want the happy and innocent MO Ruyue to think about scheming every day.
He had conferred the title of Princess on MO Ruyue because he wanted her to have a higher status so that no one would dare to bully her in the future. If she could not be a part of his family, she could be a part of his maternal family. This would also add some resistance to a certain someone.
He had given MO Ruyue a fief. MO Ruyues princess manor could be built directly in the West River Vige of Reliance Town. As for the exact location, it was a ce that MO Ruyue liked.
The people from the Ministry of Works hade to exin to MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue was truly touched.
Ji Hong was too thoughtful.
The eight pce maids and two nannies that followed were all given to her to help her manage the princess manor. If she did not like it in the future, she could do as she pleased.
This was in consideration of the fact that MO Ruyue would not like to lose weight. Otherwise, ording to Imperial Concubine Li i s wishes, MO Ruyue would be served by twenty people.
How should I address this lord?
MO Ruyue looked at the young assistant minister of the Ministry of Works, who was in his twenties and dressed in official robes, and asked politely.
I dont dare. Princess Ming Yue, you can call me Meng Xun.
Although MO Ruyue was a princess who was not rted to the royal family by blood) she was a Second Grade Princess with a fief. She was also the Emperors younger sister. Her status was naturally not something a mere assistant minister couldpare to.
Meng Xun, you also know that I will only return after another twenty days.
Now
MO Ruyue did not finish her sentence, but her meaning was obvious.
I know. The Emperor instructed me toe andmunicate with the
Princess in advance so that you can be prepared at that time.
Alright, I got it.
Then I will go back and prepare.
Alright.
After Meng Xun left, a few pce maids walked up to MO Ruyue and introduced themselves. This servant is Granny Yan.
This servant is Nanny Rong.
MO Ruyue stared at the two nannies with wide eyes, a bad feeling rising in her heart.
This one was strict, and the other was vicious. She saw the appearance of the two nannies and heaved a sigh of relief. They both had kind looks. As the saying goes, looks are born from the heart. Its good.
It was just that their names were too scary.
This servant is Qiu Shi. This servant is Chun Hua.
This servant is Xia Yu.
This servant is Dong Xue.
Then there was a name called Jiayao, which was not ranked with them. The remaining three names were: Chrysanthemum, lotus, plum blossom.
Greetings, Princess Ming Yue! The ten of them said in unison.
No need for formalities.
MO Ruyue had seen Imperial Concubine Lis way of doing things, so she was very familiar with these simple etiquette.UppTodat??d fr??m n?/v/e/l/b(i)n.c(o)/m
Nanny Rong took out a stack of contract papers and respectfully walked over to MO Ruyue.
Princess, this is the servants contract, please keep it.
These old servants, Chun Hua, Qiu Shi, and Jia Yao will stay behind to serve you. The others will go to the princess pce to take care of things.
When you leave, I will go with you. Princess, what do you think?
MO Ruyue had almost forgotten that she had a mansion in the capital that was convenient for her to live in.
But, Granny will make the arrangements.
Yes.
After Granny Yan left with the other pce maids, Granny Rong, Chun Hua, and Qiu Shi followed MO Ruyue closely..
Chapter 482 - 482: Who Can Accept Her Gift?
Chapter 482: Who Can ept Her Gift?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue didnt see Jiayao for a long time. It wasnt until lunchtime that she found out that Jiayao was an imperial chef who specially cooked for her.
During dinner, MO Ruyue called Gu Ying and a few others who were at home to eat together.
Granny Rong looked at MO Ruyues behavior and resisted the urge to speak. She frowned the entire time.
After dinner, MO Ruyue finally saw Granny Rongs true colors.
Granny Rong was too naggy!
It hadpletely overturned the image of Granny Rong that she had had in her heart since she was young.
MO Ruyue looked at the fruits and pastries bestowed by the pce. She took a basket and filled it up before bringing it to Gu Ying. Princess, what do you want to do? Just tell this servant.
This was the eighth time!
MO Ruyue hadnt made a sound before, but she couldnt stand it anymore.
I have the freedom to do whatever I want. Are you going to treat patients for me one day?
This old servant has crossed the line. Princess, please punish me!
Seeing that MO Ruyue was unhappy, Granny Rong immediately knelt down in fear.
MO Ruyue pinched her temples.
Get up.
Since it was the Emperor and the Imperial Concubine who asked you toe, other than going to the Pce to abide by those etiquette, I have the final say here, understand?
MO Ruyue looked at Granny Rong, Chun Hua, Qiu Shi, and Jiayao, who was about to ask her what she wanted for dinner.
Yes! The four of them immediately replied.
MO Ruyue looked at Jiayao and said, If you cook for me in the future, you need to know how many people are around me. Cook for them too, not just for me.
Jiayao quickly agreed.
Seeing this, MO Ruyue carried the basket and went to look for Gu Ying.
She wanted the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency to help send the remaining fruits and snacks back to West River Vige so that the children at home could have a taste.
Especially Zi Xi and Zi Chen. If they saw so much delicious food, they would definitely be very happy.
She hadnt been home for a long time and really missed those two little fellows.
She wondered if Xiaoweis embroidery had improved or if Cockroachs handwriting had be more vigorous.
Xiao Fei raised so many children at home alone, was it tiring?
Has Qinger started to have pregnancy reactions?
Was Sister Qin busy with her business? Would she be like a sessful woman again and have no time to care about her children?
Also, would Master miss her?
Was Aunt Zhou thinking of ways to cook delicious food for the children every day? She was craving Aunt Zhous cooking.
Also, how are Mrs. Wangs family, the children, and the old vige chief? Of course, the Bodyguard Agency didnt disagree. This was their family.
You guys go and get more. I have too many things.
In the end, they pulled two carriages.
MO Ruyue did not mention the matter of paying the Bodyguard Agency. If she did, Gu Ying would definitely me her.
This Bodyguard Agency belonged to him and Xue Qing in name.
Gu Ying took the basket that MO Ruyue brought over and kept it all for himself.
He didnt give anything to the others, but gave them something else to eat.
MO Ruyue had specially brought it for him to eat, and said that she wanted them to eat together. Gu Ying very naturally blocked this sentence.
A dayter, it was also the day MO Ruyue went to see Imperial Concubine Li and thank the Emperor. Chun Hua, Qiu Shi and Granny Rong woke up early to help MO Ruyue dress up.
As she was entering the pce as a Princess to thank the Emperor today, she had to wear the princess court dress. From the inside out, it was all made by the pce.
Even the undergarments were made by the royal court.
MO Ruyue felt a little hot after being dressed up by them. She had worn severalyers of clothes.
Do you wear this in the middle of summer?
What about winter?
Although it was already autumn, it was still very hot at noon.
Princess, dont worry. We have our own summer court clothes, which are naturally lighter and cooler than this. We have fox fur coats in winter.
MO Ruyue looked at herself in the mirror and was stunned.
This is quite nice.
She was wearing a bright yellow wide-sleeved cor that had a dragon of the same color. The wide belt highlighted her slender waist. Her hair stood on its end, and with the princess special hair crown, she suddenly stood up straight, making her seem much taller than usual and giving off a more dignified aura.
Princess is naturally born with a noble aura.
Granny Rong, Chun Hua and Qiu Shi also felt that MO Ruyue had changed into apletely different person after putting on the court dress. She was truly as stunning as the royal bloodline.
After tidying up, the carriage from the Imperial Pce had also arrived. MO Ruyue waved goodbye to Gu Ying and the others who had sent her out. They got into the carriage, and Chun Hua and Qiu Shi hurriedly went forward to lower the curtain.
After entering the pce, the young eunuch reported to them. MO Ruyue was immediately brought into the Political Announcement Hall.
It was supposed to be the end of the court session, but none of the officials had left. They were still standing on both sides. After the eunuch announced the arrival of a woman dressed in a princess dress, many of the officials looked at each other in confusion.
However, some people had already heard of her and knew that she was Princess Ming Yue, who had just been conferred by the Emperor.
These ministers also understood in their hearts that the reason why the
Emperor did not let them go today was probably because of this princess.
As soon as MO Ruyue entered the pce, she sincerely thanked the Emperor ording to the etiquette and words of gratitude taught to her by Granny Rong.
Princess Ming Yue, please get up. You are my great benefactor. You dont have to be polite when you see me in the future.
Ming Yue thanks the Emperor!
When Ji Hong said this, the officials were even more shocked. This Princess Ming Yue was actually so doted on by the Emperor!
There was no need to greet the Emperor, which meant that there was no need to greet anyone in the future.
The Emperor was the most powerful person in the world. If he didnt even need to greet her, who could ept her greeting?
After thanking the Emperor, MO Ruyue asked to leave to kowtow to the Empress Dowager and see Imperial Concubine Li.
The Emperor naturally wouldnt stay any longer. Now, all the civil and military officials knew that MO Ruyue was his younger sister.
Ji Hong knew that Gu Ying was actually the top scorer in the examination because of MO Ruyues requirements for choosing a husband. This man had done so much for MO Ruyue, and it was indeed enviable. However, he would never let him get together with MO Ruyue so easily.
Didnt he be the top scorer and then retire to the second ce to show how noble he is and how noble his status is?
If he wanted MO Ruyue to be a princess now, his status would not be as high as MO Ruyues.
Humph!
When Gu Ying was the top scorer, he was tricked by Gu Yings flowery words. Now, who was tricked by whom?
If he had not searched for nearly a year and could not find a more suitable person than Gu Ying, he would not have let him go so easily.
This small ordeal was already considered a favor to MO Ruyue.
Ji Hong smiled as he watched MO Ruyue leave the pce hall. The eunuchs sang loudly as they left the court.
Hua Sanpin hurriedly walked out of the rear hall and actually started jogging.
The officials saw Hua Sanpins anxious look and did not understand what was wrong with him. Of course, Hua Sanpin hade out to chase after MO Ruyue.
This lowly official greets Princess Ming Yue.
In fact, Hua Sanpin and MO Ruyue were both Rank Two, so there was no need for him to address himself as a lowly official. However, his attitude was a sign of his respect for MO Ruyue.
Even though MO Ruyue was amoner, he still had to be respectful when he saw her. After all, there was a father above him who was suppressing him.
Lord Hua, I hope youve been well. If youre free, go to Kaoshan Town to y.
I have to go and see Imperial Concubine Li now. Ill take my leave first. Princess, take care. I will definitely go to Kaoshan Town when I have time. Hua Sanpin was only here to confirm if Princess Ming Yue was MO Ruyue.
He didnt expect it, but he could understand.
Thinking back to when the Emperor was not the emperor, he had a deep rtionship with this princess. This was all good fortune..
Chapter 483 - 483: Teaching Medicine
Chapter 483: Teaching Medicine
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After MO Ruyue left, many officials surrounded Hua Sanpin. They did not know much about MO Ruyue, but since Hua Sanpin could talk to the Princess, it meant that they knew each other. Therefore, everyone surrounded Hua Sanpin and began to ask about the Princess deeds.
Hua Sanpin was naturally ying Tai Chi and acted like a master, but he did not reveal any information about MO Ruyue. If they wanted to know, they could just investigate it themselves. He would not be stupid enough to reveal it.
If anything happened, he would not be able to hang his head on his belt.
Being able to sit at the Rank Two position for so many years was not a gift from the heavens. It was the result of his diligence.
MO Ruyue was originally going to see the Empress Dowager, but after learning that the Empress Dowager had already gone to the Imperial Concubine Pce, MO Ruyue went straight to the Imperial Concubine Pce.
However, MO Ruyue was already happy with Empress Dowager even before she met her. She was there to save her the trouble of running. What a considerate Empress Dowager.
Empress Dowager was looking at her eldest grandson lovingly.
If the Eldest Prince hadnt fallen asleep, she would probably have held him in her arms.
Ming Yue greets the Empress Dowager, and greets the Imperial Concubine!
Please get up!
A young eunuch had already reported everything that had happened to MO Ruyue in the Political Announcement Hall. Empress Dowager had also learned that the Emperor had said that there was no need for formalities.
As a mother, she naturally had to stand on her sons side.
In the future, we will be a family. Ming Yue, just call me Mother. This widow has always wanted a daughter, and now her wish hase true.
Quicklye over and let me take a good look.
The Empress Dowager was indeed a kind-looking elder. She looked to be in her forties, and she still maintained her beauty well.
After chatting for a while, Empress Dowager asked MO Ruyue to examine the Imperial Consort first.
Empress Dowager knew how Imperial Concubine Li gave birth to her eldest grandson, but she was still more concerned about her health.
MO Ruyue checked her pulse and found that everything was fine. The main thing was that the people around Imperial Concubine Li had been changed and the Empress had been staying in the Cold Pce. No one dared to cause any trouble.
In the Eastern Pce, besides the Empress Dowager, the most important person was the Imperial Consort.
Ming Yue is so young, but her medical skills are so superb. Its really rare.
I heard that youve taken in many disciples at home and taught them medicine. Youre really a kind and good child.
Yes. I have.
I just want more people to learn what I know so that I can save more people.
MO Ruyue spoke against her conscience. She couldnt possibly say in front of the Empress Dowager that she had recruited those people because she waszy and didnt want to work.
This widow has two pce maids who have some medical knowledge. I wonder if they can learn a little from Ming Yue during this period of time so that they can take care of Wan Er in the future.
This widow is really worried about Wan Ers body.
Empress Dowager also knew that MO Ruyue could not possibly stay in the
capital, so she made such a presumptuous request.
If it is inconvenient for Ming Yue, then forget it. Dont worry about what this widow said.
Empress Dowager added, afraid that MO Ruyue would be put in a difficult position.
Of course I can. If the doctors in the pce want to learn from me, they can alle.
I still have more than twenty days before I go back. I can teach them every day, so I should be able to grasp some of them.
Or they can follow me to Reliance Town in theter stages ande back after they finish their studies.
Empress Dowager was delighted to hear MO Ruyues words.
Imperial Concubine Li was very touched by Empress Dowagers concern for her. She had begged MO Ruyue for her sake.
Imperial Concubine Li had a very good rtionship with Empress Dowager.
Empress Dowager and her mother were close friends, and Imperial Concubine Li was able to sessfully conceive the Prince in the Pce because of
Empress Dowagers protection.
Wont that tire Ming Yue out?
Empress Dowager was still a little embarrassed, afraid that MO Ruyue had made this decision because of her status.
No, Im just teaching them. I dont have to do any work. Im not the one learning. Its very simple.
Now that she had nannies and maids to serve her, she was so bored that she was about to mold.
There were more than a dozen female doctors in the pce, and it would be inconvenient for them to all go to the Xue ns Arts School. MO Ruyue asked Granny Rong and learned that the temporary residence had been tidied up, so they might as well go to the temporary residence. It would be more convenient for the female doctors to go to her ce.
The most important thing was that she didnt know how to face Gu Ying these few days. Every time Gu Ying looked at her, she knew that his gaze was asking if she had thought it through.
Although Gu Ying acted as if she was taking her time to think about it, she was still thinking about it.
However, she really didnt know how to make a decision now. She hadnt thought about it yet.
In fact, MO Ruyue was overthinking things. Gu Ying knew that she had been quite busy recently and was not at home every day. He had to go out every day to deal with important matters.
The condition for him not to be an official was to go home and open a martial arts school. Every year, he had to teach at least one or two imperial schrs to the Emperor, and he had to train more soldiers who could fight against ten.
If Gu Ying had not been on the battlefield himself, he would not have dared to make such a promise. However, for MO Ruyues sake, he gritted his teeth and nodded.
If he couldnt achieve all these in three years, he would have to be a county magistrate and benefit the people.
Therefore, during this period of time, he had been running around looking for people he knew in the past to advertise for him.
He had already sent a letter to his family, along with a few blueprints, to County Magistrate Wu, asking him and Foreman Fang to help him build his dojo and academy first.
The location was at the foot of the mountain in Reliance Town, only half a cup of teas worth of journey from Xihe Vige. It was easy for him to go back and forth every day, and the ce wasrge.
MO Ruyue waspletely unaware of these things.
She was currently in the pce, teaching the medical skills of the female doctors in the pce.
These people had a certain medical foundation and could understand everything with just a little bit of knowledge. They were very easy to teach and were not as difficult to teach as those at home.
Before teaching them, MO Ruyue had asked Imperial Concubine Li about it. She had agreed to let these pce maids know that she had a cesarean section.
MO Ruyue asked the pce maids to help her get some pregnant rabbits to teach these female doctors how to perform a cesarean section. She wondered if these female doctors would learn it first or if the few at home would learn it first.
When the doctors found out that the imperial concubine was still alive after a cesarean operation, they were all extremely surprised and even did not believe it.
But since Imperial Concubine Li had admitted it herself, they had no choice but to believe it.
When they saw MO Ruyue really cut open the rabbits stomach, take out the little baby, and then sew it back up, they were all extremely shocked. They did not even blink their eyes the entire time.
After these female doctors went back, they would secretly find pregnant rabbits to attack.
For a moment, the atmosphere between these female doctors was a little terrifying.
The female doctors had been learning from MO Ruyue for half a month. Seeing that MO Ruyue was a very easy-going person who was kind and did not put on airs as a master, they became bolder.
Princess Ming Yue, youve taught us all your medical skills. Arent you afraid that your disciple will starve to death? MO Ruyue rolled her eyes at them.
Are you guys stupid?
How many people are there in our Xi Liang Country?
How many women are there?
Every year, how many pregnant women died because of difficultbor?
Even if all the doctors in the world knew how to perform aparotomy, they might not be able to save everyone, nor might they be able to handle it. I cant wait for all the doctors in the world to learn my medical skills.
MO Ruyue said sincerely.
Every time she went to the pce to see Imperial Concubine Li, she would see the Eldest Princes lovable appearance and feel that her actions back then were truly correct.
If all the doctors knew how to do it, then how many cute little lives would be able to survive?
Just thinking about those cute little things made her heart soften.
Now, the murderous aura she once had had been unknowingly worn away..
Chapter 484 - 484: Criminals Don ‘t Deserve Sympathy
Chapter 484: Criminals Don t Deserve Sympathy
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When the female doctors heard MO Ruyues righteous words, they all looked at her with admiration.
After MO Ruyue realized this, she secretly felt that she had gone overboard.
Cough cough) todays time is up. All of you can go back. I will rest early too. I still have to enter the Pce tomorrow.
Yes.
The dozen or so female doctors agreed in unison.
The next day, MO Ruyue came out of the Pce after examining Imperial Concubine Li. It was almost noon. As soon as she stepped out of the Pce, she heard the pedestrians chattering about something important.
At first, MO Ruyue didnt notice it, but she listened carefully when she heard that most of the people on the road were talking about it.
Lets go and take a look. Its almost noon. Its really satisfying to see Imperial
Doctor Yuan beheaded!
Exactly. Its fine if this person is bad himself, but hes a burden to his family.
How do you know that his family isnt as bad as him? Didnt they say that people who are not family should not enter the same family?
Thats true.
MO Ruyue was a little confused. She turned to Granny Rong and asked.
Which Imperial Doctor Yuan are they talking about? Is it the Yuan family with a pair of twin daughters?
Granny Rong nodded.
Thats right.
Among the medicines that Imperial Concubine drank during her difficultbor, there was one that had the opposite effect. It was Imperial Doctor Yuan who did it. Today, he will be executed at noon.
MO Ruyue nodded and remembered that when she delivered the imperial concubine that day, there were two imperial doctors. One of them was probably Imperial Doctor Yuan.
Granny Rong panicked when she saw that MO Ruyue did not get on the sedan chair but walked in the direction of the crowd.
Princess, where are you going? Arent you going back to the Pce? Although she asked this question, he still quickly followed MO Ruyue.
Chun Hua and Qiu Shi quickly followed.
Im going to see Imperial Doctor Yuan get beheaded. I havent seen it yet.
Chun Hua and Qiu Shi, who were walking at the back, thought to themselves that it was fortunate that Granny Rong was in front of them. If Granny Rong was not there to remind the Princess, they would be the ones to remind her.
Thinking about how Granny Rong might be despised by the princess in a while, they were also a little scared.
When Princess Ming Yue had a good temper, it was really good. But when her temper red up, it was really scary.
Look at themoners. They must be cheering when they see such an evil person being beheaded. How can I miss it?
Hearing MO Ruyues reasoning, Granny Rong had nothing to refute and could only brace herself and follow her.
As for whether it was against the rules for their princess to go and see the criminals being beheaded, this was not a problem for their princess. This was their princess Ming Yue.
Since she had chosen to follow her master, then everyone had to follow her masters footsteps.
After the Empress was banished to the Cold Pce, Imperial Doctor Yuans deeds were exposed. Imperial Doctor Yuan insisted that she was the one who nned this.
Even so, his life was confiscated. Murdering a prince was a great crime.
The Emperor was not a tyrant. In the end, he was lenient. Originally, he wanted to exterminate his entire family, but in the end, he decided that the Yuan family had excellent medical skills. Regardless of gender, this was also making the best use of people.
MO Ruyue did not feel any fear when she saw Imperial Doctor Yuans head fall to the ground. It was just a little bloody.
The other members of the Yuan family who knew medicine were all kneeling in front of the guillotine. They were crying their hearts out as they watched their family members who didnt know medicine being executed.
Imperial Doctor Yuan could only me himself for courting death and implicating his entire family.
After the Yuan family members were beheaded, the remaining family members who knew medicine had to rush to the border and were sent to the military camp.
Suddenly, one of the Yuan familys kneeling people fell to the ground and couldnt get up. Moreover, her entire body was spasming.
Coincidentally, this person was just two to three meters away from MO Ruyue. MO Ruyue could see that this person was Yuan Shan.
She had never seen Yuan Shans true face, but she remembered Yuan Yuans appearance. Even if Yuan Shan did not have pimples on her face, the twins still looked quite simr. It was difficult for her not to recognize them.
Yuan Shan clutched her chest and throat as if she couldnt breathe. Her eyes were wide open, and her expression was extremely terrified.
MO Ruyue felt that she was obviously frightened, and was so frightened that she fell ill.
There was no need to go up and take her pulse. By observing herplexion and her current condition, she knew that Yuan Shan was having an asthma attack.
Seeing that there was only fear on her face and no tears, it was even more obvious that she waspletely frightened by the death of her family.
As Yuan Shan was panicking, she suddenly saw a familiar figure in the crowd. She hated this person to the core and saw her at a nce.
MO Ruyue. Save me.
Yuan Shan stretched out her hand toward MO Ruyue, as if she was about to crawl over.
Many people heard her intermittent words and looked in the direction she was pointing at. They saw a beautiful woman dressed in gorgeous brocade.
Yuan Shan saw that MO Ruyue was indifferent, so she tried her best to squeeze out another sentence.
Doctor Mo. Save me.
Her voice was so loud that the onlookers heard it clearly. So this beautiful woman was a doctor?
However, MO Ruyue remained unmoved. She coldly looked at Yuan Shan, who was reaching out to her and trying to crawl toward her. The guard behind MO Ruyue stepped forward and tried to block MO Ruyue, but was pushed back by her.
The soldiers had already noticed themotion and came to maintain order.
Yuan Shan thought that she had already announced that MO Ruyue was a doctor, so she did not believe that MO Ruyue would ignore her in public.
She also knew that this woman was lucky enough to be conferred the title of princess by the Emperor.
The Emperor was indeed blind. Why did he confer the title of princess on such a country bumpkin?
MO Ruyue was a princess now, and her reputation was the most important. She did not believe that she would ignore her in public and note to save her.
MO Ruyue must have hated her a lot. Thinking about how she had to save her and how aggrieved she felt, she actually felt a sense of satisfaction from taking revenge, and her expression changed.
As a criminal, Yuan Shan was wearing a white prison uniform. Her hair was disheveled, and she looked sad, but she was still suppressing her urge to maintain her manners.
And her weak and helpless appearance would inevitably cause some soft-hearted people to feel pity for her.
MO Ruyue looked at Yuan Shan and confirmed that she was really sick in the head.
Not only did she not go forward to save her, but she also took a few steps back. The soldiers also looked at MO Ruyue, waiting for her to decide whether to save Yuan Shan or not.
After so many days, everyone in the capital, including the soldiers guarding the city gate, knew that MO Ruyue was a princess and a very favored one at that.
MO Ruyue frowned unhappily.
What you should do now is not to send these criminals to the border as soon as possible. If you go earlier, you can do something useful for the soldiers who have sacrificed their lives for the country. What are you waiting for?
Yes!
The soldiers only reacted when they heard that.
Indeed, criminals did not deserve sympathy.
The soldiers hurriedly pulled up the people who were still alive and hurried on their way. As for the half-dead Yuan Shan, she was mercilessly pulled up by them and dragged along the way.
Yuan Shans eyes widened in horror. She did not believe that MO Ruyue would not save her in front of so many people!
NO!
Wasnt she afraid that her reputation would be tarnished?
Wasnt she afraid of being despised?
Chapter 485 - 485: Playing the Host
Chapter 485: ying the Host
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue didnt care about her reputation at all. Besides, this family was a criminal, so they deserved to die.
Even if these people went to the border, it was uncertain how many of them would survive.
This time, she would not save such a disgusting person no matter what. She would not save her even if she was given money.
She wanted to see if something bad would happen if she didnt save her this time.
Now that she had everything, she didnt believe that anything bad would happen to her.
Thest time was definitely a coincidence.
She believed that the heavens still had eyes.
Even if something bad happened, she would rather face it than save such a disgusting person.
Yuan Shan was terrified, and her asthma attack worsened. She was dragged away by the soldiers, and she was already out of breath within a hundred meters. She still felt the approaching death slowly, and her eyes widened as she died with grievances.
The soldiers dragged her out of the city gate for a hundred meters before realizing that Yuan Shan was already dead. They immediately ordered a soldier to drag her back and throw her back into the pile of Yuan family corpses that had been beheaded. They threw her into the mass grave together with the other corpses.
Yuan Shans death didnt cause anymotion among the troops.
The only person who could attract attention was Yuan Yuan.
Before the Yuan family was raided, she had already found out that it was her sister who disfigured her face because she liked her fianc.
Seeing her sisters death, she did not know if she was happy or sad. It was as if she could see her future from her sister. At this moment, her heart was numb.
Ah, its a pity that she died just like that.
Why didnt the doctor save her? Isnt the job of a doctor to save people?
When manymoners saw Yuan Shans death, some of them muttered softly. As the first person spoke, a second and third person responded, and the voices became louder and louder.
MO Ruyue didnt think much of it. She had seen too much of human nature.
Granny Rong couldnt tolerate those people spouting nonsense. She was so angry that her face turned cold and she was about to scold them. How dare these ignorantmoners talk about her princess!
p them!
MO Ruyue ordered the guards behind her.
Immediately, two guards stood out and walked toward those who spoke.
Pa, pa, pa. They gave each of them a few big ps.
As they were all guards, their strength was naturally not small. With two ps, the faces of those who spoke were swollen.
MO Ruyue felt refreshed.
At this moment, she felt even more grateful to Ji Hong.
It was good to have a status. She didnt even need to do it herself.
Themoners were suddenly stunned. Why did the guards with sabers suddenlye up and beat people up for no reason?
After the two guards had pped the people who had said bad things about MO Ruyue, Granny Rong could finally step forward and berate them. Do you think that the Yuan family shouldnt have been raided?
The Emperor was merciful and spared these peoples lives. Even the heavens couldnt bear to see this, so he had to give those vicious people their death. Are you fighting for the Yuan familys daughter?
How can a filthy sinner like her be worthy of the princesss treatment!
Themoners finally understood. The first part was not important. What was important was that the person they were talking about was the Princess! No wonder she was dressed so extravagantly and had such an extraordinary aura.
Knowing that MO Ruyue was a princess, those who were close to MO Ruyue were scared away from her.
They were afraid that they would identally step on her and touch her. That would be a death penalty.
Some of the smarter ones immediately knelt down and kowtowed to MO
Ruyue.
Hence, everyone knelt down.
MO Ruyue did not understand why these people were suddenly kneeling down.
She didnt say anything, nor did she scold them. Granny Rong only scolded those who said that she didnt save Yuan Shan.
MO Ruyue wasnt here specifically to see them kneel. She was just here to watch the show.
Now that the fun was over, she was going home.
She still had to teach the doctors how to perform cesarean section.
However, she did not make a sound to let those people get up.
Many times, ignorant people who could not differentiate right from wrong could not give them a good look and let them know what was right and what was wrong.
Anyway, those people would naturally wake up after she left.
After MO Ruyue left, themonersined in their hearts. She is a good princess. Why did shee to the city gate to watch the beheading?
The few people who were pped did not get up from the ground for a long time, and their backs were drenched in sweat.
They had almost been on the guillotine today.
After MO Ruyue returned to the Pce, she first ate and rested for a while.
Then, she got up to answer the questions of the pce maids about the cesarean section.
However, Granny Yan came over to inform her that the eldest daughter of the Song family hade to see her.
The eldest daughter of the Song family?
MO Ruyue was puzzled. Who was the eldest daughter of the Song Family?
She hade to the capital only to deliver the child for Imperial Concubine Li, but she had never met the eldest daughter of the Song family.
Oh, wait. She really knew ady from the Song family!
Let her in.
After a while, Song Jiaxin jogged in happily. She didnt look like a young miss at all.
MO Ruyue.
Thismoner greets Princess Ming Yue!
Alright. You dont have to be so polite with me.
However, when Song Jiaxin saw the pce maids, Granny Yan, and Granny Rong, she still restrained herself.
MO Ruyue could tell that she was ufortable and waved at Granny Rong and Granny Yan.
You guys can leave first. I want to talk to her privately.
Yes.
After the two nannies left, Song Jiaxin returned to her usual self.
Princess, youre really something. Youve been in the capital for so long and you havente to y with me.
Sit down. Im still me. I just have an additional title.
Dont you know what Ive been doing these past few days?
If this emperor wasnt the emperor she knew, she might be at home or in prison now.
Song Jiaxin stuck out her tongue and realized the danger she had been in.
You are an auspicious person. You have your own destiny, and you can turn bad luck into good luck!
Song Jiaxin didnt stand on ceremony. She picked up the teapot on the table and poured herself a cup of water to drink.
Aiya, this is great. Even the tea is top-notch tribute tea. If I didnte to the Pce, I wouldnt be able to drink such tea.
MO Ruyue looked at Song Jiaxin and asked her to continue her performance. She did not believe her at all.
She remembered that her aunt was still the current Empress Dowager.
Moreover, this person was deeply liked by Empress Dowager and would not give her niece good tea.
Song Jiaxin was mischievous for a while more before she told MO Ruyue her purpose foring.
I heard from my aunt that youll be going home in a few days. Its not easy for you toe, but you didnte to my ce.
I said before that you had to do your best to be a host in the capital, but now, its not that easy for me to do so.
I wonder if its possible for me to invite you to Xiangguo Temple to admire the moon at the Mid-Autumn Festival?
Xiangguo Temple was very lively that day. It only happens once a year, and I might not be able to go in the future. This year is thest year.
Why?
Song Jiaxin knew what MO Ruyue meant by why. She blushed in embarrassment.
Isnt it because Im going to be eighteen next year and get married? Once I get married, Ill belong to someone elses family. How can I have so much freedom? If I want to go out, I have to report to the mother-inw and get her permission..
Chapter 486 - 486: The Secret to Giving Birth to Twin Brothers
Chapter 486: The Secret to Giving Birth to Twin Brothers
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Oh.
MO Ruyue gave a meaningful oh and stared at Song Jiaxin, making her a little nervous.
Actually, you cant go out as you please now, right?
Song Jiaxin nodded. Thats right!
Every time she went out, he would find some reason.
Especially after cousin became Emperor, Mother and Father watched him even more closely.
In reality, they were not willing. She entered the pce, afraid that she would still be unable to forget her cousin, so they always locked her at home until she saw her current husbands family.
Today, I said that because I know you, I have toe and visit. Thats why
Father and Mother agreed.
Oh.
MO Ruyue nodded and pondered.
Song Jiaxin panicked when she saw MO Ruyues expression.
Whats wrong?
Youre going home, and Im getting married. I dont know when well be able to see each other in the future. Why dont youe with me?
Song Jiaxin was actually acting coquettishly with MO Ruyue. She looked at MO Ruyue pleadingly with her big eyes.
MO Ruyues heart softened when she saw that her eyes were like Tang Tangs when she acted coquettishly with her. She had not intended to reject her at first, so she pretended to be deep in thought just to tease her.
Alright. i
Thats great. I like you so much.
Song Jiaxin was so happy that she went forward to hug MO Ruyue.
At this moment, Gu Ying came in from outside and happened to see this scene. His face immediately darkened.
Granny Rong was about to enter the room to report, but before she could ask Gu Ying to wait, Gu Ying had already stepped into the room.
She really deserved to die!
If she didnt do her job well, what if the person who came was an outsider?
Big Brother, why are you here?
MO Ruyue also saw Gu Ying. Seeing that he didnt look too good, she thought that something big had happened. Otherwise, he wouldnt havee to her ce for no reason.
MO Ruyue did not take Granny Rongs concern that she did not have the time to report to her to heart.
She had said that Gu Ying could enter directly if he came, and there was no need to inform her.
When Song Jiaxin saw that someone had arrived, she immediately let go of MO Ruyue and returned to her seat.
A letter from home.
Following Gu Yings words, MO Ruyue and Song Jiaxin saw the thick unopened envelope in Gu Yings hand.
MO Ruyue was a little flustered. She didnt know why her family had sent a letter. Could something have happened?
She took the letter from Gu Ying and opened it.
He took out a stack of letters and opened it. There were several pages. The handwriting on the first page looked very young. Without looking at the signature, he knew that it was written by Tang Tang.
ording to Tang Tangs clever and domineering personality, she must have requested for her letter to be ced at the top so that she would be the first one MO Ruyue saw when she opened it.
As expected, the first sentence on the letter was, The first thing Mother saw is
Tang Tangs letter. Tang Tang is so happy. Is Mother very happy too?
However, Tang Tang misses her mother so much. When is her mothering back?
Is Mother eating well every day? Is she exercising well?
Most importantly, does she miss Tang Tang?
Upon reading this, MO Ruyue noticed that there were a few drops of water on the letter.
She didnt even need to study it. Just by looking at the shape of the water mark, she knew that the little girl was crying.
Tang Tang misses Mother a few times every day.
Even so, she did not forget to learn medicine, train her body, and help her mother manage the hospital. Tang Tang was really busy!
Tang Tang also ate the fruits and pastries that her mother had sent back.
They were so sweet that she missed her mother with every bite.
Even though she was so busy, Tang Tang did not forget to miss her mother.
Mother,e home quickly!
Love you, little cutie Tang Tang.
She had learned thest sentence from MO Ruyue, and she had also learned the heart from her.
Seeing Tang Tangs desire for her to go home, MO Ruyue was even more eager to go home.
She wished she could go home right now, but Imperial Concubine Li hadnt fully recovered yet, so she couldnt let go of her worries.
Baby Tang Tang, wait a few more days for Mother. Ten days at most, and she would definitely be able to go home.
Aiyo, why is little baby Tang Tang so adorable?
I also want to have a daughter in the future. A daughter is a mothers little cotton jacket. This saying is true.
MO Ruyue was so engrossed in reading the letter that she did not realize that Song Jiaxin was also reading it at the side.
Fortunately, this was a letter from home. There was nothing to be afraid of.
Song Jiaxin also realized that this was not a good thing for her, especially when she met Gu Yings unfriendly gaze. She was a little embarrassed.
This isnt what I wanted to see. The princess brought this to me. You saw it just now.
Huh. Gu Yings gaze was too scary.
Song Jiaxin was exining to Gu Ying that MO Ruyue had indeed taken the letter and opened it at her ce.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying did not say anything and continued reading.
The second letter was written by Si Bao. He wrote more letters to her.
However, MO Ruyue was troubled by the fact that a four-year-old child always treated himself as an adult.
His letter was full of family matters, so MO Ruyue did not have to worry. He would definitely take good care of his sister.
He also reminded MO Ruyue to take good care of herself and reminded her about Gu Ying, which finally made Gu Ying feel a little more at ease.
Tang Tang hadpletely forgotten about his existence. Fortunately, Si Bao still remembered that he was his uncle
At the end of Si Baos letter, there was still a childish sentence. He also hoped that his mother woulde home soon. He actually drew a small heart at the end.
You pretended to be an adult, but in the end, you still gave yourself away. Wow, a son like him seems pretty good. I want a son too. What should I do?
Song Jiaxin didnt feel ashamed at all when she said that she wanted to have a son or daughter before she got married.
Instead, she asked MO Ruyue curiously, Sister Princess, do you have any secret to giving birth to twins? I want to give birth to a pair of cute twins too.
Just thinking about it made Song Jiaxin extremely excited. If she had a pair of
twins like this in the future, wouldnt she be so happy?
When they walked on the streets, the three of them would also wear matching outfits. They would be the prettiest babies on the street!
Gu Ying suddenly wanted to light this womans mute acupoint, so much so that he could not read the letter properly.
Not only was she reading other peoples letters, but she was also chattering non-stop.
Because she saw the cute letters written by Si Bao and Tang Tang, Song Jiaxin waspletely immersed in her future little angels and what they would look like. She couldnt see Gu Yings ugly face at all. Even if she saw it, she pretended not to see it.
Next were the letters from Er Bao and San Bao. They had the same idea. They told the two of them not to worry about their family while they were outside, but they also told them to go home as soon as possible. Everyone at home missed them.
Her family still didnt know that MO Ruyue had been conferred the title of princess. She didnt know if it would shock them when she returned home.
Song Jiaxin was not interested in the bigger ones after reading the two smaller ones. When MO Ruyue was reading the other letters, she took the letters from the two little fellows and read them carefully again. She was envious.
After Song Jiaxin finished reading the letter, she reluctantly returned the two pieces of paper to MO Ruyue.
Then Sister Princess should stay at home and rest well. Lets agree that Ille and find you on the day of the Mid-Autumn Festival.
MO Ruyue nodded. Granny Rong, help me send Jiaxin off.
Song Jiaxin was a little ttered, but she didnt refuse..
Chapter 487 - 487: Ignorant Village Woman
Chapter 487: Ignorant Vige Woman
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Where are you going for the Mid-Autumn Festival?
Gu Ying should not have asked, but he remembered that he was supposed to bring MO Ruyue to Xiangguo Temple on the Mid-Autumn Festival.
MO Ruyue also remembered Gu Yings invitation, but she did not seem to have epted it openly.
She invited me to go to Xiangguo Temple with her.
Gu Yings face turned even darker.
Why dont you go with me?
As soon as MO Ruyue said this, Gu Yings face turned from dark to bright.
Alright, well go together then.
Its gettingte, you should rest early.
Gu Ying left after saying that and left excitedly.
MO Ruyue wondered if she was too soft-hearted.
The Mid-Autumn Festival soon arrived. MO Ruyue, who thought she could go to Xiangguo Temple during the day, was summoned into the Pce by the Emperor to apany Empress Dowager and Imperial Concubine Li to celebrate the Mid -Autumn Festival.
As usual, MO Ruyue went to Imperial Concubine Lis ce after arriving at the Pce. After taking her pulse, she went to the Empress Dowagers ce for dinner with Imperial Concubine Li.
Imperial Concubine Li started talking about the Yuan Family. The family that almost killed her.
MO Ruyue suddenly remembered Yuan Shan, who had asked her for help. It had been a few days, but nothing bad had happened to her. It seemed that everything before was purely a coincidence.
MO Ruyue was relieved.
She wanted to give her such a big cheat, but she had to save everyone. That was really disgusting.
MO Ruyue spent the Mid-Autumn Festival with Empress Dowager, Imperial Concubine Li and the Emperor.
She thought that she might not be able to stroll around Xiangguo Temple and the streets today, but Empress Dowager spoke up.
Alright, this widow is already very happy to have all of you apany her for a reunion dinner. I am old and my body is heavy. Now that it is dark, I want to
You guys can go y if you want to.
MO Ruyue really wanted to leave immediately, but she couldnt leave after Empress Dowager said so. It would seem like she didnt want to stay here.
Im afraid that if I dont let you out, that girl Jiaxin will run into the pce and cause trouble for me. Go.
After MO Ruyue left the Pce, she immediately sent someone to the Song family to inform Song Jiaxin toe over. She went home and changed into her usual clothes. She was going to y, so she had to wear something light.
Gu Ying arrived very quickly. MO Ruyue had also tidied up the ce, but Song Jiaxin had yet to arrive.
MO Ruyue nned to go directly to the Song Familys house. As soon as they left the house, they saw Song Jiaxin with three people following behind her.
Sister Princess, Im sorry for beingte.
Its okay. Lets go.
As it was the Mid-Autumn Festival today, the streets were bustling with people. It was not convenient for them to take a carriage, so they had to walk to Xiangguo Temple.
Fortunately, it wasnt far away, so she could take her shopping.
From afar, they could see the lively scene of the lights shining at the entrance of Xiangguo Temple.
MO Ruyue could even hear the street vendors shouting at the entrance of her house.
Sister Princess, let me introduce you. These people came with me. You wont mind, right?
MO Ruyue was speechless. She had already brought them here, and now she said she minded. Would they leave?
When Song Jiaxin said this, she looked very embarrassed and apologetic.
Originally, they had agreed that only they would go and y by themselves. Now that there were a few more people and they didnt know each other, it might not be veryfortable for them to yter.
However, what could she do? She had been threatened by her family, and they were clinging to her stubbornly. She could not kick them away. Moreover, she had already rejected them, but those two shameless women were still sticking to her.
Although MO Ruvue did not like to scheme against others, she was aware of the twists and turns between these aristocratic families.
She wasnt angry about the people Song Jiaxin brought along. Anyway, they were just shopping on the streets. They didnt have anything to do with each other, so it was fine.
This is Minister Lis second son.
These two are the two Di daughters of the Liu family.
From the way Song Jiaxin introduced them and didnt mention their names, it was obvious how much she disliked these people. To be exact, she didnt like those two women.
And that man, the second son of Minister Li, wasnt he Song Jiaxins fiance? He was probably angry at her.
Those two were the Liu familys Di daughters. Song Jiaxin obviously didnt like them, but she still wanted to bring them along. MO Ruyue figured out that these two were probably the Empress nieces.
MO Ruyue did not understand. She and the Empress were on bad terms and could be considered to have a life-and-death feud.
These two people actually had the nerve toe shopping with her?
As expected, shameless people were invincible.
MO Ruyue nodded at them, then pulled Song Jiaxin and led the way.
As for the two Di daughters of the Liu family, they were intentionally or unintentionally approaching Gu Ying.
This young master is this years runner-up, right? This little girl, Liu
Gu Ying did not listen to the Liu familys Di daughter finish speaking. He walked straight to the stall in front of him and bought two skewers of candied haws.
Gu Ying took the candied fruit back. The two daughters of the Liu family thought it was for them and were excited. In the end, Gu Ying directly stuffed the candied fruit into MO Ruyue and Song Jiaxins hands.
Im sure youve alle out after dinner. There might be something deliciouster. Have some hawthorn to digest first.
MO Ruyue could already guess that the two Di daughters of the Liu Family were the Empress nieces, let alone Gu Ying who already knew a thing or two about the Imperial Court.
Hepletely ignored the two women who had been trying to get close to him.
The Liu familys daughters wanted to talk to Gu Ying several times along the way, but Gu Ying avoided them every time.
No matter how stupid the two were, they knew that Gu Ying did it on purpose. The two of them were so angry that they didnt know if they should continue to follow him. However, if they didnt follow him, they wouldnt be satisfied. Their family members wanted them to be in the second ces eyes. It would be best if they could get him to take a fancy to one or two of them. If such a talent was roped in by their Liu family, it would be able to increase their Liu familys strength.
However, they did not expect Gu Ying to be so stubborn and pretend not to hear them. No matter how thick-skinned he was, and with the second son of the Ministers family and the youngdy of the Song family present, they could not be too obvious.
As for Princess Ming Yue, in their eyes, she was just an ignorant country bumpkin who was lucky enough to save the Emperor, thus obtaining the Princess title.
Because it was night, although there was candlelight, the things on the stall could not be seen clearly. At least, it was not clear whether they were clean or not.
MO Ruyue didnt want to eat the food at the stall at all. She had eaten her fill in the Imperial Pce, so she wasnt hungry at all.
Sister, look, in front of us is Xiangguo Temple. Well reach it after crossing this bridge.
Song Jiaxin happily pulled MO Ruyue to the front.
On the main road into Xiangguo Temple, along with the two sides of the bridge, there were two rows ofnterns lit up, looking very beautiful.
Because there were manynterns here, the road was also illuminated more clearly.
It was unknown whether it was a river or a pond under the bridge, but it was quite big. The two ends could not be seen because of the darkness.
As they walked to the arched bluestone bridge, the lights on both sides were reflected in the water, shining brightly.
There were also stalls on both sides of the bridge, even more than on the street.
Wouldnt this disturb the peace of Xiangguo Temple?
Chapter 488 - 488: Catch That Thief!
Chapter 488: Catch That Thief!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue didnt know what kind of gods were worshiped in Xiangguo Temple.
She didnt need to worry about these things. She could worship whatever she wanted.
Therefore, MO Ruyue took a few more nces at the stalls here, wanting to see what was on disy near the entrance of the temple. It was indeed different from the ones on the street.
Most of them were rted to temples.
Granny Rong, you can go shopping with Chun Hua and Qiu Shi. You dont have to follow me.
Its almost time. Well gather on the bridge and then go home. It doesnt matter if you guys shop a littleter or y a little longer. Its a holiday today.
GO.
Song Jiaxin agreed with MO Ruyues words. She didnt like having maids following her closely when she was shopping.
The two daughters of the Liu family looked at MO Ruyues behavior and despised her even more. She was indeed a vige woman from the countryside!
With her behavior, she would beughed at by the nobledies in the capital. As the master, she actually didnt have any maidservants to follow her. Then what was the use of these people?
Even if she wore a princess costume, it could not hide the smell of dirt!
At MO Ruyues strong request, Granny Rong and a few maidservants happily went to visit their own shop.
Gu Ying followed closely behind MO Ruyue. He would buy anything that she saw and liked.
On the other side the second young master of the Li family also followed behind Song Jiaxin, handing over silver and carrying things.
It made the two Di daughters of the Liu family seem redundant, but they still had to follow closely behind these two teams.
Although there were no stalls in Xiangguo Temple, the incense was very popr.
On the first and fifteenth day of the lunar month, Xiangguo Temple would not close its doors for twenty-four hours. There would be peopleing to offer incense and kowtow during the twenty-four hours.
Because this was Xiangguo Temple, there were naturally soldiers guarding it to maintain order, so there wouldnt be chaos.
Lets go, Sister. Lets go and ask for a fortune. Originally, asking in the morning is the most urate, but Its the same now.
MO Ruyue really didnt want to ask for a lot. What was there to ask for?
However, Song Jiaxin had already pulled her to grab two buckets of lots. She held one in her hand and stuffed the other into MO Ruyues hand.
This was the first time MO Ruyue had ever touched something like this in her two lifetimes.
Seeing Song Jiaxin so enthusiastic and everyone staring at her, MO Ruyue mimicked the person beside her and shook it a few times. A stick really fell out.
The best draw!
Wow, sister, youre so lucky.
They strolled around Xiangguo Temple, but MO Ruyue refused to worship those statues.
In fact, when people prayed to Buddha and God, it was nothing more than being unsatisfied in their hearts or doing something wrong. They wanted to seekfort.
To MO Ruyue, she had nothing toin about.
If she really wanted something, she could only do it herself. It was not like a free lunch would fall from the sky if she begged for these things. Otherwise, she would do nothing but kneel and kowtow every day.
As for the old monks exnation, MO Ruyue was even more amused.
No matter how bad these people were, no matter how bad their offers were, they would still think of ways to say nice things.
In fact, it was just to make people happy and then think of ways to make them nav more incense money.
She also mentioned that the Red Luan Star has moved and that there was going to be a joyous event.
Not to mention other things, just looking at her and Song Jiaxins age, if there was really no marriage, when they were eighteen, the higher-ups would also distribute them. How could there not be happy news?
She didnt even need to say that!
In her opinion, this was equivalent to guessing blindly.
When they were about to leave, Song Jiaxin went to ask for a few more protective talismans and even helped MO Ruyue ask for them.
MO Ruyue saw that she was so enthusiastic, so she went to beg for one for each of her family members, including Gu Ying.
MO Ruyue gave it to Gu Ying on the spot.
Gu Ying happily took it, the corners of his mouth curling up uncontrobly. The talisman was hidden deep in his chest.
MO Ruyue casually looked around Xiangguo Temple and lost her interest. She felt that she might as well go shopping.
It was more interesting to watch people guessntern riddles and put out rivernterns.
Song Jiaxin could also tell that MO Ruyue had lost interest in the Xiangguo
Temple
Now that they had gotten their lots, it was time for them to go out. They still had to go shopping elsewhere.
Song Jiaxin was also thinking of guessingntern riddles. She wanted Second Young Master Li to win a fewnterns for her.
As soon as they left Xiangguo Temple, a group of people suddenly rushed out from inside. Because there were so many people, it was crowded.
MO Ruyue and the others wanted to move aside, but before they could do so, they were squeezed over. Two people were separated from Gu Ying and the others, and they were immediately dispersed by the crowd.
Gu Ying immediately walked to MO Ruyues side to protect her, but a second wave of people came out.
When those people passed by, MO Ruyue felt that something was wrong. She felt that someone had touched her waist just now. Although the movement was very light, her waist was very thin. He didnt touch her arm or anything else, but he had specifically touched her waist?
MO Ruyue reached out to her waist, only to find that there was only the pouch strap left!
She was afraid that she would drop it, so she tied it to her belt. In the end, only the rope was left. It was obvious that the purse had been cut off.
Youre courting death!
Before MO Ruyue could finish her sentence, she had already shot out and chased after the person who had touched her.
She wasnt sure who it was, but as she chased after him. Someone in the crowd in front of her suddenly sped up.
Hey, hey, hey! What are you doing? Why are you running?
There are so many people here. Dont step on them.
When themoners saw someone running and squeezing, they were unhappy and shouted,
However, MO Ruyue ignored them.
That person had snatched her purse. There was no need to talk about the silver in it, but there was also the amulet she had bought for for Tang Tang and the others.
Although she didnt believe it, it was a kind of peace of mind.
How could she be at ease if he stole her peace of mind?
Gu Ying also reacted the moment MO Ruyue rushed out, but he was stopped by those chattering people. MO Ruyue had already chased after that person for a long time and was already on the bridge.
Seeing this, Gu Ying did not care that these people who were blocking him weremoners. He directly walked past them. Some people wanted to pull him, but they were kicked away by him.
The little thief actually had some skill left in his movements. He ran even faster than MO Ruyue. MO Ruyue couldnt catch up with him in a short while, so Gu Ying flew after him.
Because there were too many people on the street, the little thief deliberately made his way into the crowd.
Suddenly, a patrol team walked over. Seeing the situation, the thiefs heart skipped a beat.
Gu Ying shouted when he saw the patrolling soldier.
Catch that thief!
The soldiers had already seen the thief who was leading the way and knew that he was the one they were talking about, so they surrounded him.
The thief saw that he was surrounded from all three sides, so he ran back. In the end, he ran to the bridge of Xiangguo Temple.
Along the way, many stalls were knocked over, and fruits and snacks were scattered all over the ground. Those stall owners were crying and cursing.
Little thief, lets see where you can run! Run again!
MO Ruyue saw that Gu Ying had gone to chase after the thief. Fortunately, she knew what she was capable of and did not waste any more time to chase after him. However, she did not expect that the thief would still have some tricks up his sleeve. Gu Ying could not catch up with him for a while. Coincidentally, he ran back by himself..
Chapter 489 - 489: Making His Wife Happy
Chapter 489: Making His Wife Happy
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The thief panicked!
He didnt expect MO Ruyue to still be here!
The thiefs eyes were filled with determination as he decided to knock MO Ruyue down. However, he did not expect that MO Ruyue was actually hiding something. This seemingly weak and pretty girl was actually a martial artist!
He had only exchanged a few moves with MO Ruyue, but he had never seen her in such a way. He did not want to overthink it.
After a few more breaths of time, Gu Ying and the soldiers arrived.
He gave MO Ruyue a vicious p and wanted to run back, but Gu Ying and the soldiers had already caught up and were about to get on the bridge.
Then, he saw a group of soldiers approaching from behind MO Ruyue. There was no way out on either side.
Seeing that the situation was not looking good, the thief gave MO Ruyue a final blow and jumped off the bridge into the water.
MO Ruyue tilted her body to dodge the thiefs palm attack. Suddenly, she felt a strong forceing from behind her, which she was unprepared for. She dodged in front but failed to dodge behind. Her body tilted and she fell off the bridge and into the water.
MO Ruyue!
Gu Yings eyes almost popped out when he saw MO Ruyue fall into the water. He also saw the person who pushed MO Ruyue. It was one of the Liu familys Di daughters.
When he flew over, MO Ruyue was already close to the surface of the water. He didnt have a whipping weapon in his hand, so he couldnt tie her down.
Gu Ying didnt hesitate to jump in the direction where MO Ruyue fell. At the same time, he gave the Liu Familys daughter, who had pushed MO Ruyue into the water, a hard p.
The eldest daughter of the Liu family also fell off the bridge and was pped. She felt that her internal organs had been shattered by that palm.
Ah!
Plop!
Plop!
Plop!
Themotion here had already attracted the attention of the crowd. Granny Rong, Granny Yan, and the others had also noticed MO Ruyue falling off the bridge. They were so frightened that they all rushed onto the bridge.
Princess!
While Song Jiaxins heart was pounding, she saw Gu Ying jump down as well. She heaved a sigh of relief, and at the same time, a fire burned in her heart.
She had also seen the Liu familys Di daughters standing behind MO Ruyue earlier. Moreover, one of them had done something to her. Although she could not see clearly, she was certain that MO Ruyue had been pushed down by them.
She walked over and pped the face of the other daughter of the Liu family.
If anything happens to Princess Ming Yue, your Liu family will definitely be in big trouble!
Second Miss Liu saw that her sister had also fallen into the water. This time, she was really flustered and didnt know what to do. She immediately cried and didnt care about Song Jiaxin hitting her.
Someonee quickly, go into the water and save my sister. She cant swim. Help!
However, no one seemed to have heard her words. The guards who followed MO Ruyue also went into the water. They all headed toward MO Ruyue, leaving the Liu familys Di daughter alone.
The guards felt their hearts turn cold. They were supposed to protect the princess, but in the end, they had caused the princess to suffer such a great disaster. They hated the Liu familys daughter to the bone. It would have been good if they had not pushed her into the water.
Seeing that she was about to sink into the water, the few personal maids of the Liu family went around the bridge and jumped into the water.
They didnt know how to swim either, but if anything happened to the young miss in the water, they wouldnt be able to survive. They might as well drown themselves in the water and protect their families.
At this moment, Gu Ying only wanted to skin that thief and Eldest Miss Liu alive.
MO Ruyue Imew how to swim, so she still chased after the thief after entering the water.
Since she had alreadye down, of course, she would chase after the thief.
Seeing that MO Ruyue was able to move freely in the water, Gu Ying heaved a sigh of relief and quickly caught up to her.
You go up first, Ill chase after you.
Gu Ying quickly caught up to the thief and caught him with a palm.
The thief didnt expect that these people would chase him into the water with just a small purse.
Was it necessary?
Suddenly, he felt a tightness in his chest. He had been hit twice and his acupoints had been sealed. He could not move.
Gu Ying turned around and saw that MO Ruyue had already reached the shore. She dragged the thief into the water for a long time beforeing back up.
The thief was soaking in the water. When the soldiers arrived, they went into the water and fished him out. At the same time, they also fished out the unconscious maidservants of the Liu family. Finally, they fished out the Di daughter of the Liu family.
It was toote, and they were in the water. They didnt know which was the youngdy and which was the maidservant.
As for the eldest daughter of the Liu family, she had already drunk a stomach full of water and fainted. Moreover, she had been pped by Gu Ying.
The Liu familys second young miss saw her sister, and pounced on her, crying.
If anything happened to her sister, how was she going to exin it to her family?
The two sisters had always had a good rtionship. She was really afraid that their sister would die.
Doctor! Quickly call the doctor.
However, no one paid any attention to her because the maidservants and nannies she brought with her were all unconscious at this moment. No one helped her find a doctor.
Song Jiaxin wouldnt help her look for it at all. It would be better if she drowned. She was furious.
MO Ruyue had apanied her out for a walk. If anything happened to her, she would feel bad for herself, let alone the others.
However, these two b*tches of the Liu Family actually wanted to drown MO Ruyue. They were so vicious. She would rather die herself. She did not care.
The second son of Minister Lis family, seeing that Song Jiaxin didnt care about the two youngdies of the Liu family, naturally he wouldnt care either.
After all, he had to please his fiance. If he were to interfere with the people that his wife hated, he would also be hated. He was not that stupid. What did those peoples lives have to do with him?
After MO Ruyue came up, Granny Rong and Granny Yan immediately draped MO Ruyue with the cloak that they had prepared earlier to prevent her from catching a cold and revealing her body.
Gu Ying took out MO Ruyues pouch from the thiefs body. It was already soaked, and the protective talisman inside was also soaked. There were only a few pieces of silver left.
MO Ruyue was so angry that she stepped forward and broke the thiefs leg and hand bones.
The thief, who was originally drowning, was actually woken up by the pain.
Song Jiaxin looked at the second daughter of the Liu Family who was asking for help, and she turned to MO Ruyue with her mouth wide open.
See, It you want your sister toe over quickly, cant you just step on ner arms and legs a few times?
Were not doctors, and we cant invite a doctor over in a short period of time.
It wont be good if something really happens if you hold it in for too long.
The Second Young Miss of the Liu family saw MO Ruyues expression and her eyes narrowed. This vige woman was so fierce.
What she didnt expect was that Song Jiaxin would fall out with them and really ignore her sister.
She also knew that Song Jiaxin said that on purpose, but how could she step on her sisters legs and hands? Wouldnt they break?
She could not do that no matter what.
Cant you help me find a doctor? When the timees, Ill definitely visit and thank you. I beg you.
She said that she was begging her, but her tone was clearly threatening.
Ive already asked someone to invite them. Maybe there are too many people.
Who can guarantee when they can be invited?
Why dont you carry your sister yourself? Your clothes are already wet.
It would have been fine if Song Jiaxin hadnt said anything, but once she did, all the onlookers turned to look at the unconscious Miss Liu.
The weather wasnt cold to begin with, and she wore very little. Once she was wet, her exquisite figure was exposed in front of her eyes. Immediately, some people with bad eyes stared at her with ill intentions..
Chapter 490 - 490: Who Did She Provoke
Chapter 490: Who Did She Provoke
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When Song Jiaxin said this, the Second Miss of the Liu family also noticed the malicious gazes of the people around her. She was so angry that her face turned white and red.
The maidservants and nannies who had followed them here had also fainted.
If the soldiers had not fished them out, they might still be soaking in the water.
At this moment, no one could go to her carriage to take things. Moreover, their carriages were all parked at the Song residence. In the end, she had no choice but to lie on her sisters body.
Next time something like this happens, dont get involved.
These are just worldly possessions. If theres no more, I can think of a way to get more. But if something happens to you, what would we do?
Think about the babies back home who are waiting for you.
Gu Ying wished he could punch himself. It was all his fault for being too low alert.
It seemed that no one could be trusted. Even if it was a peaceful street, they had to guard against it as if it was a battlefield.
Im just so angry. Ive just bought the amulet for Tang Tang and the others, but it was stolen by me and fell into the water!
MO Ruyue was furious at the thought of it. She had missed the babies very much. She had finally bought something for them, but she had encountered a thief.
The thief had stolen everything, but he had to steal her purse. There wasnt much money in this purse.
It was also because the clothes of this era did not have pockets like the clothes of theter era. The purse could only be hung on the waist and could not even be ced on the sleeves.
Very soon, people from Shuntian Prefecture came over. With such a hugemotion here, someone had already gone to report the case.
The patrolling soldiers told them what had happened. The people near
Shuntian immediately dragged the thief away. However, they were puzzled. This person had been beaten to such a state. His hands and legs were broken. This person was a ruthless person.
In the blink of an eye, he saw Gu Ying beside him and understood that Gu Ying was quite famous on the battlefield.
I want to sue the Liu familys Di daughter for trying to kill me!
When I was facing this thief, she pushed me off the bridge.
I suspect that she is in cahoots with this thief. Otherwise, why would she help the thief push me into the water?
I really dont understand. I dont even know her, and I dont have any grudges against her. I really cant think of a reason why she would harm me. The only exnation is that shes in cahoots with this thief.
MO Ruyue stopped the Shuntian Prefecture people who were about to leave and pointed at the unconscious Eldest Miss of the Liu Family.
Only then did Shuntian Prefecture notice the person lying on the ground beside them.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, the Second Young Miss of the Liu familys face instantly turned pale. She looked at MO Ruyue.
Princess Ming Yue, dont nder her! Dont go too far!
MO Ruyue didnt even look at the Second Miss of the Liu Family. She just stared at the Shuntian Prefecture people.
Ill testify for Princess Ming Yue. It was indeed the Eldest Miss of Liu family who pushed Princess Ming Yue, causing Princess Ming Yue to fall off the bridge.
If it wasnt for Princess Ming Yues ability to swim, perhaps she would have be like this?
While Song Jiaxin was talking to the Shuntian Prefecture people, she also used her elbow to nudge the Li Familys Second Young Master, wanting him to testify as well.
Indeed, I saw it too.
Of course, the Young Master of the Li Family was on the same side as Song Jiaxin. Even if he didnt see it, he had to say that he saw it. Moreover, he really saw it.
Shes also drenched and unconscious. Why dont we wait for the doctor toe and talk about it when she wakes up?
Shuntian Prefecture couldnt afford to offend the Li Liu family, but they also knew that this newly promoted Princess Ming Yue was deeply loved by the Emperor, Imperial Concubine Li, and Empress Dowager. They simply treated her as a real princess, and they couldnt afford to offend her.
The people from Shuntian Prefecture started sweating profusely. Shuntian Prefecture in the capital was really too difficult to deal with!
No one could see clearly how the eldest daughter of the Liu family fell into the water.
When Gu Ying gave her a p, he used a strong wind. In fact, he did not even touch her body. Therefore, many people did not understand how the eldest daughter of the Liu family fell into the water.
Cough, cough.
At this moment, the eldest daughter of the Liu family actually coughed out two mouthfuls of water. Her eyshes moved and her eyes blinked as she slowly woke up.
It seems that we dont have to wait for the doctor. You can take her away.
Because Song Jiaxin and the Li Familys Second Young Master were witnesses, Shuntian Prefecture couldnt y dumb.
They had no choice but to take the youngdy of the Liu family away with them. However, they knew what they were doing. The youngdy of the Liu family was drenched. They had asked the soldiers to bring a wooden board over and let her lie on it. They had already sent someone to inform the Liu family. They could not solve this matter casually.
The eldest daughter of the Liu family, who was carried away, reacted for a while before realizing that she had been taken away. She was still confused about being beaten into the water.
What are you doing? What are you doing?
Do you know who I am? What are you doing? Put me down!
However, due to MO Ruyues gaze, two of MO Ruyues guards were following behind them, so they could only pretend not to hear her.
The Liu familys Second Young Miss did not expect such a big thing to happen. She also did not expect her sister to be so bold as to push MO Ruyue into the water. What should she do?
Those maids and old women were still choking on the water, and none of them had woken up. She had no one to serve her, and her sister had been taken away. In a fit of anger, she covered her face and ran home crying. She had to hurry home to find her parents.
Her sister could not be brought to Shuntian Prefecture. If she was brought there, what reputation would she have in the future?
When the patrolling soldiers saw this, two of them went to escort the Liu familys second young miss. They could not get away with the fact that there were thieves on the street. Now, the matter had be so big.
They couldnt let anything happen to the Liu familys Second Miss. If anything happened, they should go back to their own homes.
However, not long after the Liu familys second young miss left, two maidservants and an old woman slowly woke up on the ground. When they woke up, they did not see their two young misses. Thinking of what had happened before, they panicked. Could it be that the eldest young miss had drowned?
They fainted again.
The guards who had been watching them were surprised that they had woken up, but they fainted again. They were helpless and continued to wait for the doctor or the Liu family toe and take these servants back.
In fact, when the thief stole MO Ruyues purse, she did not want to fight to the death with him. However, sheter realized that the thief was actually skilled. Moreover, his martial arts did not seem like the mediocre skills of a thief. He seemed to be better than her and was not inferior to Gu Ying. It was obvious that he was well-trained.
It was obvious that it was someone who wanted to harm her. Even if it wasnt, it couldnt be an ordinary thief. She definitely didnt want to let him go.
MO Ruyue was very depressed. Who did she offend to make him so scheming to harm her?
Ever since he came here, he did not kill or set fire.
Most importantly, what could he get from her if he harmed her?
Now that she had be a princess, it was impossible for her to have the chance to enter the pce to fight with them for that man. What was there to be afraid of? Must they kill her?
Because of this incident, there were fewer people on the originally lively street.
When the timid youngdies saw this situation, they were so frightened that they did not dare to stay outside. MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were drenched and could not continue strolling..
Chapter 491 - 491: Good Master
Chapter 491: Good Master
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Granny Yan had already called for two carriages. MO Ruyue and Gu Ying each took one and returned to the Princess temporary residence.
When they left, the doctor they had invited arrivedte. Only the old women and servant girls of the Liu family were left. The doctor had checked their pulse. They had choked on water for a long time and were scared. There was no danger to their lives. They just needed to recuperate for a few days.
As for whether their life would be in danger when they returned to the Liu family, that was not something that outsiders could know.
Gu Ying told MO Ruyue not to worry about the Liu Familys Eldest Young Miss and the thief who had been taken away by Shuntian Prefecture. He went out that very night, but returned not long after.
MO Ruyue was already resting, so he went to rest as well.
After what had happened, Gu Ying was worried about MO Ruyue staying alone in the pce. Although the pce was guarded by guards and maids, he was still worried.
Even when he slept at night, he was vignt. He would immediately open his eyes at the slightest movement.
As a result, the next morning, MO Ruyue looked at Gu Ying with a strange expression. His eyes were slightly sunken and green.
You couldnt have been scared by falling into the waterst night, right? Im fine. Whats there to be afraid of?
Actually, MO Ruyue knew that he was worried about her.
After all, he was a person who had been on the battlefield and had made great contributions on the battlefield. How could he be so scared that he could not sleep because of a small thief?
She was just joking with him, telling him that she was in a good state and that there was no need to be so nervous.
Seeing that MO Ruyue was still in the mood to joke around with him, Gu Ying was relieved.
We will be going home in two days. Do you have anything to pack? You can slowly pack in these two days.
If theres anything you havent prepared yet, tell me and Ill help you prepare it.
Before leaving, MO Ruyue could not avoid going into the pce to check on Imperial Concubine Li. She might have to stay in the pce for the next two days, so she would not have time to prepare her own things.
In a while, she would go to Shuntian Prefecture to take a look personally.
I dont have much to prepare. I was thinking of buying more gifts for my family. Look at the rewards Ive received from the Pce. I cant even pull a carriage home. Ill probably have to ask the Xue Familys Bodyguard Agency toe.
Those things were given to her by the Imperial Court, so she couldnt sell them, but she could definitely use them. Moreover, MO Ruyue had the right to control them herself.
She could not use so much by herself, and the things given to her were not bad. If she spent money to buy bad things to take home, she would not burn money. Giving things from the Pce would be more prestigious, right?
After breakfast, Gu Ying went out.
Granny Yan and Granny Rong brought a few maidservants and knelt down in front of MO Ruyue.
What are you doing?
This servant failed to protect her master. Princess, please punish me! Granny Rong spoke on behalf of the others, and the others followed suit and kowtowed.
MO Ruyue wondered what was going on.
Get up quickly. I cant me you for this. Even if you were by my side at that time, something like this would definitely have happened.
She truly felt that way. Moreover, these two nannies and several maidservants did not know how to fight. Even if they were by her side at that time, they might have fallen off the bridge with her.
Afterst nights incident, MO Ruyue hated staying in this ce where the good and the bad mixed together and cheated each other even more.
This ce was bustling, but she still felt that her small mountain vige was morefortable.
They didnt have to scheme against each other, eat whatever they wanted to eat, talk however they wanted, and eat melon seeds whenever they wanted.
Even the Emperor treated her well, but she didnt like to have to pay respects to them every two or three days.
The Emperor had already pardoned her, but power was supreme, and there were still so many people who did not like her. She tried her best to behave herself and put on an appearance. She felt that it was quite aggrieved to do such hypocritical things against her heart.
Therefore, she was only suitable for West River Vige.
As the saying goes, if there is no tiger in the mountain, the monkey will be king. She was willing to be a monkey in Xihe Vige, and she did not want to be a phoenix in a cage in Beijing.
The nannies and maidservants didnt expect MO Ruyue to be so easy to talk to. They knew that their master was a good person. Even though she sometimes didnt treat rules as rules and didnt like to be bound by them, they felt that it wasnt a good idea. They had to put aside all these and follow this master.
You guys havent eaten breakfast either, right? Hurry up and take turns to eat breakfast. I might be entering the Pce soon.
MO Ruyues tone was unquestionable, and the nannies and maidservants did not dare to resist. They all stood up and went to eat breakfast.
The breakfast they ate was not much different from what MO Ruyue ate. MO Ruyue had told Jiayao that she had to watch the people around her cook for her, not just for her.
Since then, Jiayao had been making more and more food, and MO Ruyue couldnt finish it all by herself. She would only have a bowl of porridge in the morning with a few buns, dumplings, and some fruits. She would always leave a lot for them to eat.
Every time Jiayao tried to persuade the nannies to cook less, the two nannies would also probe MO Ruyue, but MO Ruyue would still say that she should cook more and not less.
In fact, they all knew that the princess had deliberately made too much for them to eat.
This was not the only good thing that had been revealed unintentionally. They were very lucky to have met such a good master, so they became more and more loyal to Mo Ruyue.
When they first arrived, they had a wait-and-see attitude towards MO Ruyue. They even felt disdain for her. They thought that she was just a vige woman, and they were unwilling to be her ves.
But after getting along, they gradually fell in love with this master. Instead, they felt that this kind of master was better.
With the Princesss true nature, she was much easier to serve than those who liked to beat around the bush.
Every time, they were the ones who scared themselves to the point of being on tenterhooks. In fact, ever since they followed Princess Ming Yue, the princess had never given them any face or asked them to do anything overboard. There was even less beating and scolding. They even ate and drank well every day. There was no better master like this.
MO Ruyue didnt know how the servants were feeling, but at the end of the day, MO Ruyue was indeed summoned into the Pce.
MO Ruyue had already tidied herself up and followed the eunuch into the pce.
On the way, she heard many people discussing the matter of the Liu familys Di daughter.
They were all rumors that were not good for the Liu family.
Liu familys Di daughter was a vicious person who persecuted Princess Ming
Yue? Liu familys Di daughter colluded with a thief to harm Princess Ming Yue?
Liu familys Di daughter was drenched in water and carried into Shuntian Prefecture, and so on and so forth. in any case, the reputation of the Liu familys Di daughter was gone.
MO Ruyue listened to the rumors on the street. No matter what) the Liu family was the Empress direct line of descent. No ordinary person would dare to spread such gossip.
Even if the Empress was banished to the Cold Pce, there were still a few powerful people in the Liu family who were quite useful in front of the Emperor.
As for whether it was real or fake, or if it was used by the emperor to stabilize the people, that was unknown..
Chapter 492 - 492: Life and Death Feud
Chapter 492: Life and Death Feud
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After thinking about it, MO Ruyue recalled that Gu Ying had gone out for a while after they came backst night. Although he came back soon after, he immediately went out again after breakfast. She guessed that he had most likely sent someone to spread these rumors.
He was helping her vent her anger.
After entering the Pce, Empress Dowager and Imperial Concubine Li asked if MO Ruyue was alright.
In fact, they had already asked someone to find out if she was fine. If she was really fine, they would not have let her enter the Pce now.
Initially, she thought that she was frightened and wanted her to rest at home. However, when she thought that she would leave the day after tomorrow, she was afraid that she would have fewer opportunities to see her, so she could not help but announce her to the Pce.
If it werent for the Eldest Prince, Imperial Concubine Li would have left the pce to see MO Ruyue herself.
Dont worry, this widow will definitely help you. That Liu family girl is too outrageous!
She simply doesnt put this widow in her eyes!
After all, MO Ruyue had been conferred the title of Princess Ming Yue, so she had to call her princess. Yet, she was still tantly persecuting MO Ruyue.
Did some people think that she was old and no longer cared?
Then this time, she would let them see if she could still manage things!
Thus, when MO Ruyue was eating the soothing meal that Empress Dowager and the others had ordered the imperial kitchen to specially prepare for her in the afternoon, and when the dishes from the Liu familys head were just ced on the table, a eunuch came to deliver the imperial edict.
It wasnt the Emperors, nor was it Imperial Concubine Lis, or Empress
Dowagers.
The eunuch directly verbally reprimanded the Liu family for not teaching their daughter well. Empress Dowager specially gave the Liu family a book on
female virtues. She hoped that the Liu family would carefully teach the girl in the family before letting her out.
If Empress Dowagers decree was released, it would be a big deal.
It seemed like a few words, but in reality, Empress Dowager had belittled this woman. Which family would dare to marry a woman from such a family?
That would destroy the third generation!
No one would use their own descendants to make such a joke. Even if they wanted to curry favor, they had to think about it carefully.
They would rather find a virtuous person from a small family with a low family background than marry someone without virtue.
As soon as the decree was issued, four families who were originally married to the Liu family had alreadye to cancel the marriage. This made the Liu family so angry that their noses were crooked.
However, Empress Dowagers edict did not allow anyone to exin, let alone apologize. Everyone had all kinds of excuses, such as their sons fate was not good recently and it was not suitable for a happy event. Otherwise, there would be a bloody disaster, or they had to prioritize their studies. Anyway, there were many high-sounding excuses.
The third and second rank officials of the Liu family had reprimanded their daughters in court for their poor upbringing. At the same time, they had the intention of begging for forgiveness. However, Ji Hong did not answer them at all and nodded along with their words.
Since you feel that youve failed to educate your daughter, then educate her at home. Teach her well. Dont let such a situation happen again. This kind of girl who doesnt know the rules and has no virtue will harm others and herself.
When the two ministers heard the Emperors words, they almost spat out a mouthful of blood and forcefully swallowed it.
These words were said by them. The Emperor was just going along with their words tofort them, but was this the way to persuade them?
Ji Hong didnt care. Didnt they say so themselves?
For a moment, the Liu family became a big joke in the capital.
The Liu family had no choice but to give MO Ruyue something valuable as an apology. They thought that she would not ept it.
However, MO Ruyue didnt refuse at all. She dared to ept as many gifts as she could.
The Liu family had paid a huge price.
Did you get people to spread those rumors on the street?
Gu Ying did not avoid MO Ruyues gaze. He only hummed and did not answer her directly, but it could be considered a side admission.
Youve ruined the reputation of the other girls of the Liu family.
Actually, MO Ruyue did not pity the other innocent people of the Liu Family.
Since you did such a thing, you have to ept the consequences. No matter what a person did, there would be consequences.
She really couldnt be med. She could only me the Liu familys Di daughter.
What does their reputation have to do with me? What those people said is the truth. They didnt lie.
Their reputation was ruined, and they deserved it.
Gu Ying had deliberately let people spread the truth.
That Liu familys Di daughter was brought to Shuntian Prefecture, and in the end, she would definitely be released with a lot of noise and a lot of rain.
The Liu family might even think of a way to hide this matter from the world.
He would not let them have their way and release this reputation in advance. Lets see how they would ept it.
Otherwise, would his MO Ruyue be bullied for nothing?
Even those families who went to cancel the engagement had his hands.
Although he wasnt a general and wasnt in the capital, he still had connections.
If it wasnt for the fact that there were too many peoplest night, he would have killed Lady Liu on the spot.
Even if he couldnt kill her now, that scourge wouldnt have an easy time in the future.
She was so vicious and didnt know how to restrain herself. Whether she could live to 30 would depend on her own temperament.
The eldest daughter of the Liu family, who had been bailed out by the Liu family the next day, was currently having a high fever and was asionally unconscious.
When she woke up, she thought about what had happenedst night. Although her parents did not scold her, she knew that her reputation was ruined and that she might have implicated her family. She was so angry that her heart ached.
She was so angry that her heart hurt and her face turned pale. She almost couldnt breathe and even fainted twice.
The Liu family invited a doctor to see her again. The doctor only said that after she fell into the water, she did not change her clothes in time and got a cold.
In fact, only the eldest daughter of the Liu family knew that her heart was really aching. It was not because she was angry.
However, after hiring a few doctors, they all said that there was nothing wrong with her and asked her to calm down and take good care of herself.
However, this illness apanied her for the rest of her limited life. The Liu family did not know the truth until her death.
MO Ruyue did not know about this. She was in a very good mood at the moment. She sat in the carriage and lifted the side curtain. She looked at the beautiful scenery outside, and her mood was lifted by the gentle breeze.
Today, they finally returned home. Because they had brought a lot of things, and there were many more people, it was not easy to ride horses. They all took carriages.
Even so, they would be home in about three days.
Gu Ying, who was riding beside the pnquin, would asionally nce at the smiling MO Ruyue from the corner of his eyes. His mood soared as well.
He didnt know when it started, but his mood would change ording to this womans mood.
MO Ruyue couldnt wait to grow wings and fly home.
Gu Ying knew that MO Ruyue was anxious, so he tried his best to let the group leave as quickly as possible. After leaving the capital, he looked back and thought that the Liu Family must be in chaos now.
Hmph!
He bullied MO Ruyue and thought that he was a pushover.
He didnt even need to verify it to know that the Liu family wouldnt just sit back and do nothing when they got home. You know how to y dirty tricks, so do I. Lets see whos one step ahead!
The Liu family and MO Ruyue were mortal enemies. It was impossible for them to just watch her return to West River Vige safely.
He couldnt do anything to her in the capital, but could he not do anything to her after leaving the capital?
Just as the Liu Family was about to send someone to stop MO Ruyue, the second courtyard of the Liu family caught fire.
There was really a fire, and the ce where the fire happened was the storeroom.
Water! Water! Hurry up and put out the fire!
All the servants of the Liu family took something that could scoop water to water the fire. After a long time, the fire was put out, but the warehouse was burnt ck and nothing was left.
Heavens!
The old men and women of the Liu family fainted.
Most of the important savings of the Liu family were in there..
Chapter 493 - 493: Peaceful Place
Chapter 493: Peaceful ce
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
On the streets of the capital, the Liu family became the biggest news in the teahouses of the capital for a while.
Passerby A invited Passerby B to a teahouse to chat.
You still dont know, right?
I heard that the Liu familys daughter has be the empress
At this point, Passerby A paused and nervously looked around to see if there were any suspicious people listening in. What he was going to say next should not be heard by anyone, but he still approached Passerby B and whispered.
Her conduct is not good. Ever since she entered the Pce, the Liu family has been in trouble. Now, the reputation of the Liu familys daughters is even worse.
Now, even therge storeroom at home had caught fire!
If you ask me, this Liu familys girl is not suitable to enter the pce to be an empress. I cant stand it anymore. This family is all wicked!
How can you be the mother of the world!
After Passerby B heard the gossip, he looked for Passerby C and continued to chat about the first-hand news.
Passerby C went to look for Passerby D after hearing the news In the end, Passerby X shared it with his friends.
I heard that the Liu familys empress is an extremely vicious woman
Weve been punished by the heavens, and our family has suffered a disaster. The emperor is probably going to depose the empress. Otherwise, hell jinx our Xi Liangs new emperor. What should we do?
Thats right!
For a time, such rumors were all over the capital.
Two dayster, at the Xuanzheng Hall,
Prime Minister Wang made an example. The Empress iscking in virtue. She is not suitable to be the mother of the world. She cant set an example
Below was a long list of irond evidence of what the Empresss uncles and brothers had done over the years.
Emperor, please reconsider.
Minister Liu and the second and third-grade officials of the Liu family all had ck faces
Not waiting for their faces to turn ck for a second, more than a dozen people stepped forward one after another and submitted the same memorial as Prime Minister Wang.
The Liu family members were really panicking now.
MO Ruyue and the others would not know about the turmoil in the imperial court. Even if Gu Ying knew what was going to happen today, his heart was still on MO Ruyues. He could not care about those things. Seeing that they were about to enter Reliance Town, they were all eager to return home.
Arriving at Reliance Town was no different from reaching home. They would be home in less than half a cup of teas time.
Brother, is that uncle?
Was that Uncle? Since Eldest Uncle is back, is Mother back too?
Is Mother sitting in the carriage next to him? Quick, quick, quick!
Tang Tang pulled Si Bao and asked as she spoke. Before she could finish, the two little fellows ran toward the group of carriages.
Wang Tiezhu, Qin Qingfei, Hua Jianan, and the others did not manage to catch up. Although there were not many people on the street, they were still drenched in sweat.
My little ancestor, run slower, run slower!
Its your Mother whos back. They wont run away again. Dont fall
The few of them chased and shouted, but the two little fellows were still in the crowd and nimbly scuttled to the front of the group of people.
When MO Ruyue and the others came back, the carriage was originally in the middle because the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency was following them.
When they were about to reach Reliance Town, MO Ruyue asked the coachman to bring her carriage to the front of the group. She was worried that her family would be disappointed if they didnt see her when they received the letter and knew that they wereing back today.
Since MO Ruyues carriage was already at the front, Gu Ying naturally rode on his horse and continued to follow.
Not long after the carriage arrived, MO Ruyue vaguely heard Tanh Tangs voice.
She looked out the window at Gu Ying. Did you hear Tang Tangs voice? I think I heard Tang Tangs voice. Are they here to pick us up?
Gu Ying moved his ears, wanting to listen carefully. Before he could answer, the few people who were running toward them and trying their best to chase after the two children in front of them were exactly what they were thinking about!
Even MO Ruyue had seen it.
Stop the carriage!
The coachman had followed MO Ruyue here, and he was one of the four guards.
How could he not listen to the princess? He immediately reined in the reins.
Before the carriage had even stopped, MO Ruyue jumped off the carriage, causing Gu Yings hands to itch.
He didnt manage to pull her in.
Mother, is that really you?
When the two little fellows saw the person who jumped down from the carriage, their eyes curved up. However, they wanted to see more clearly. They did not even dare to blink as they ran and asked.
Tang Tang, Si Baos mother is here, mother is back!
MO Ruyue quickly ran toward the two children. The pedestrians on the street had already stopped to watch therge group of people entering the town.
Mother, Mother
Mother~
Si Bao would asionally act coquettishly, but he was too embarrassed to be like his sister. No matter what the venue was, he had to maintain his upbringing outside.
But now, he had forgotten about all that. He didnt even remember to follow the rules when he was outside. Now, he was even better at acting coquettishly than Tang Tang.
Hey, mothers two babies. Mother missed you so much.
Yo, Doctor MO is back!
Ah, Divine Doctor MO is back. Sigh!
Ah, its been a long time. Doctor MO is finally back!
Where did Doctor MO go? I havent seen you in town for so long?
MO Ruyue was not in the mood to answer those people. She only smiled and nodded.
There were still many people who asked the same question over and over again. She did not have the time to answer them. She pulled the two little babies into the carriage and told the coachman to speed home.
A group of people passed through Reliance Town. Soon, the streets became lively because of MO Ruyue.
When such arge group of people entered the vige, it was naturally a lively scene.
After they returned to the vige, the whole vige flocked to MO Ruyues house to wee her and Gu Ying home.
They had not been home for more than a month, and the entire vige really missed them.
Especially MO Ruyue.
She gave out ideas to teach them how to farm, how to pick herbs, and how to nt all kinds of things.
Although MO Ruyue had been on bad terms with many people when she first came to the vige, West River Vige was peaceful now.
In the past, no matter if everyone liked her or not, they all missed her when they saw that she had not returned for more than a month.
The people from the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency sent them to their destination. They were supposed to go back directly, but Gu Ying stayed behind.
Even if they left now, they would have to stay in Lianshan County or the next town in the evening.
It was quite hard for them to run around all year round. These were his good brothers. Moreover, Xue Qing was also here. He asked them to leave tomorrow so that he could meet Xue Qing properly.
Thus, the team agreed to stay in the militarypound for the night.
When the vigers saw that the two nannies and eight maidservants were dressed even more extravagantly than the youngdies of the big families in town, they were all dumbfounded. What was going on?
Its good that youre back. Youre tired from the journey.
Everyone, go home. When theye back to their senses, it wont be toote for you toe back and chat.
The vige chief saw that everyone in the vige was crowded in front of MO Ruyues house, chattering away and asking all sorts of questions. There was also a group of people who came back with MO Ruyue and the others. The old vige chief came over in high spirits to maintain order..
Chapter 494 - 494: Building the Princess’ Residence
Chapter 494: Building the Princess Residence
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Fortunately, the vigers were much more obedient now. They would basically do as the vige chief said.
Everyone saw that MO Ruyues family was busy at the moment, so it was not appropriate to chat with them. They only weed MO Ruyue and Gu Ying back- They were still sensible-
After the old vige chief spoke, they all went home, leaving only a few who were closer to MO Ruyue.
Sister, could it be that you bought more servants?
Theyre dressed too well.
Mrs. Wang came over with a pair of twins and greeted MO Ruyue warmly.
You guys move these things into the courtyard first.
MO Ruyue could tell that the two nannies and the eight maidservants were ufortable. She was at a loss, but she would not exin anything to them. Since they had chosen to follow her, they should know her true identity, so they sent them to work to ease the awkward atmosphere.
However, she really did not know how to exin it to the vigers. If she were to say that they were her servants, they were indeed dressed better than the old vige chief.
Although she had the title of princess, she did not want the vigers to revere her. After she went to the capital, she yearned for the free life in the vige. It was just that there were more servants.
This matter had to be exined slowly.
Its a long story. They will be my servants in the future.
Chun Hua specially take out the gift that I wanted to give to someone else.
Yes, Madam.
MO Ruyue had discussed this matter with the nannies in the carriage the day before yesterday.
Although she could be called Miss, her original body was also married, and she had children who called her mother. If these maids called her Miss in front of outsiders, it would be strange. They might as well call her Madam.
The people who came back from the capital had undergone special training.
They could do well without MO Ruyues special instructions.
The gifts were ced on the table in the room.
MO Ruyue gave the things of Sister-inw Wang, Xue Qing, Qin Qingfei, and the others on the spot.
As they unwrapped the presents, MO Ruyue told them about what happened after they went to the capital, but she did not tell them the details.
Even so, when the people present heard MO Ruyues words, the gifts in their hands almost fell to the ground.
Youve be a princess?
Are you a rtive of the royal family?
Mrs. Wang stuttered and asked word by word.
Well, you can say that.
But I dont like the capital. Im back, and Im still the MO Ruyue from West River Vige.
MO Ruyue didnt want to say it at first, but if she didnt say it, it would be even worse if they found out through outsiders one day. It would seem like she was hiding it from them, so she might as well say it now.
As soon as MO Ruyue finished speaking, another group of people entered the vige. This group was not small, at least thirty people.
MO Ruyue didnt know what those people were doing. Gu Ying looked at the sign on the carriage and knew that they were probably from the Ministry of Works.
Two days ago, Meng Xun had just finished his work. After learning that MO Ruyue had left, he had rushed over.
He got off the carriage as soon as he arrived.
This lowly official iste, please forgive me, Princess Ming Yue!
It seemed that Princess and the others had just arrived home. Fortunately, he was not toote.
Theres no need to be so polite here.
MO Ruyue also remembered that she still had to choose the princesss residence.
However, looking at those people in their thirties, she had a headache. Where were these people going to stay tonight?
Gu Yings militarypound was already full of people, and he had just stuffed those people from the Xue familys Bodyguard Agency in. If he wanted to squeeze these people in again, he would have to sleep five or six people in a room.
Leave them to me.
Gu Ying could tell what MO Ruyue was troubled about.
Do you have any ideas?
Could it be that he didnt have enough bedding for these people to sleep on the floor?
Didnt you say that youreing back to open the Civil and Martial Arts Institute? When I came back just now, I saw that it was almost done. It seems that everyone has moved in.
Upon hearing Gu Yings words, MO Ruyue also remembered his Civil and Military Academy. When she passed by the corner of Reliance Town on her way back, she was too busy talking to the children in the carriage to pay attention.
Then Ill leave it to you to arrange.
Mrs. Wang and the others looked at MO Ruyue.
I have a title now, so I need a corresponding house Theyre here to build a house for me.
Mrs. Wang and the others were confused. They didnt know how to get home.
When they got home, they realized that they were carrying big and small bags.
After seeing what she was carrying, she was so frightened that she wanted to send it back immediately. However, she thought of MO Ruyues character and knew that she would definitely not ept it.
Sigh! He had taken advantage of her again!
Not only did Mrs. Wang seem to be listening to the heavenly book, but the Li family also seemed to be listening to the heavenly book.
They knew that MO Ruyue had been conferred the title of princess and that Gu Ying had taken the second ce in the examination, but he, the second ce, had actually refused to be an official!
The whole family couldnt understand. However, it was their eldest brothers choice, so the younger ones couldnt question him.
Aunt Zhou didnt care about that. Although she was also surprised, she felt that it was normal for anything to happen to MO Ruyue.
She was currently in the kitchen, concentrating on cooking delicious food for MO Ruyue and the others.
Knowing that Jiayao was the royal chef of the pce, she happily pulled her over to see her precious seasoning in the kitchen.
Jiayao didnt know what to do at first, but she was soon attracted by Aunt Zhous precious seasonings.
The people from the Ministry of Works were specially here to work for MO
Ruyue. MO Ruyue knew that she could not dy it as they should have time.
She originally wanted to go to County Magistrate Wu to look at the
foundation, but Gu Ying told her that she was now a princess and could focus on the ce first. After building it, she would tell Wu Xianling. County Magistrate Wu would prepare the documents and there was no need to go to him first.
Of course, MO Ruyue wouldnt feel that she was idle when it was something that could save her a lot of effort.
Meanwhile, County Magistrate Wu had already received the notice from the higher-ups. Knowing that MO Ruyue had be a princess, he rushed over early the next morning.
After hearing this news, County Magistrate Wu was overjoyed.
Of course, he also knew that MO Ruyue was going to build a princesss manor in Lianshan County, so he brought all the maps with him.
Now that MO Ruyue had really be a phoenix, he naturally had to handle her matters personally.
County Magistrate Wu, who had just entered West River Vige, looked at the vige and sighed with emotion. Regardless of whether MO Ruyue would still live in West River Vige in the future, West River Vige would be a treasurednd from now on.
County Magistrate Wu immediately knelt down and kowtowed to MO Ruyue upon seeing her. Greetings, Princess Ming Yue. Princess Ming Yue! When he kowtowed the first time, he was pulled up by someone.
County Magistrate Wu, please get up. Theres no need to be so polite.
How could MO Ruyue allow him to do that? County Magistrate Wu was quite old, and in the past one or two years, he had been quite serious in his work. He was considered a good official.
County Magistrate Wu showed MO Ruyue the map he had brought and asked her to choose a location.
Now, the entire Lianshan County belonged to MO Ruyue, but she did not want to go to the county town of Lianshan County to build a princesss manor.
She was most familiar with West River Vige and had lived there for more than a year. She liked it quite a bit.
The chickens, ducks, and rabbits on the mountain could already be ughtered. She was prepared to do a big job before going to the capital.
It was also impossible to build the princesss manor deep in the mountains and forests. It could not be isted from the world.
In the end, she chose to stay at the foot of Xihe Vige and Reliance Town.
There was a rtively empty area in this area.
Although there were still some crops in this area, they were all the most barren. There were more stones than soil in thend, and thend could not make ends meet every year..
Chapter 495 - 495: Delivery Mode
Chapter 495: Delivery Mode
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
If MO Ruyue requisitioned thend, the families who owned thend would receive somepensation, and their lives would be better.
There was only a total of three familiesnd. Because there were too many stones here, people were toozy toe over and open up. In addition, there was a gue previously. Only the people of West River Vige would clear up every inch ofnd in the vige except for the main road.
After choosing the location, Meng Xun did not dy at all. He brought people to see the feng Shui and said that it was a good ce. The people from the Ministry of Works immediately started work.
They had specially built the princesss manor for MO Ruyue, so MO Ruyue had asked Aunt Zhou to take care of the food and drinks for them.
The money Meng Xun brought for the construction of the princesss manor included food and drinks for them.
Those who went to cook for them were all paid. Meng Xun paid them himself, so MO Ruyue did not ask.
Meng Xun naturally didnt dare to make a fuss here.
MO Ruyue thought that she could have a good rest after she came back. However, the reality was cruel.
After the people from the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency left, another messenger came on horseback.
Not only did she have to personally answer the questions of the apprentices at home, but she also had to do it herself. She had no time to rest every day, and this time, she received a letter from the capital.
She said that in another two days, half of the pce maids who had studied medicine with her woulde.
Fortunately, half of them were left in the pce. After all, Empress Dowager and those consorts couldnt leave them, so the two batches were switched. MO Ruyue had solved the problem of the apprentices at home, but she had to ept new apprentices.
MO Ruyue, who felt that her future was bleak, took a deep breath. It was alright, she was about to make it big!
MO Ruyue was afraid that she wouldnt be able to hold on if she didnt give herself some encouragement.
There was also a letter from the capital to Gu Ying, telling him about the oue of the Liu family.
Gu Ying was quite satisfied after seeing that the arrangement was simr to his.
In fact, not all the things in the Liu familys warehouse had been burned. He had taken more than half of them.
Even if he could not use those things, it was good to rob the rich and help the poor. He would not be so stupid as to burn them all.
Setting fire was just to hide from the eyes and ears, and also to teach the Liu family a lesson.
MO Ruyue looked at her courtyard, which was almost fully upied. She wondered why the bigger the house, the more people came.
And no matter how big the house was, they always felt that it was not enough to live in.
When the pces medical maids came, they had to worry about arranging a ce to stay.
Gu Ying also realized that their vige was a little small, and people often came to the capital. The vige had to be expanded. He nned to build two more inns at the end of the vige
The two of them called the old vige chief over.
After two days of digesting, the old vige chief had already epted the fact that MO Ruyue had be a princess. He was still a little heartbroken. Why did Gu Ying get into the second ce but give up on the official road?
Why did hee back to open a literature and martial arts academy?
However, he was not his child, so he could not say anything.
Now that MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were looking for him, he appeared in front of them as soon as possible.
The old vige chief did not disagree with MO Ruyue and Gu Yings suggestion. Besides, MO Ruyue was now the Big Boss of Lianshan County. He had to listen to whatever she said. Moreover, she was giving him a good suggestion. How could he not be willing?
As a vige chief, it would be a great honor to expand the original area of the vige when he was in office!
This was something that the other vige chiefs could not even imagine
After leaving the house, the old vige chief thought that there was a princess in the vige. Although this princess was still the same as before, he knew that this was because she was kind and good-tempered, but it did not mean that they could be impudent in front of her.
The old vige chief thought to himself, When I have time, Ill have to gather all the vigers and have a good talk with them. I cant be too presumptuous in front of MO Ruyue. Shes a real princess now.
After he returned, he went straight to Lianshan County to look for Magistrate
Wu and stamp thend. When he returned to Reliance Town, he went to find Foreman Fang to lead the team over.
In the past year, Foreman Fang had taken on many more big jobs than before, and they were all from West River Vige.
The neighboring viges saw that Xihe Vige had be lively again, and houses were being built everywhere. From the looks of it, the foundations were not small. They were all curious if some squires wanted to take root here. They were really lucky!
A few dayster, the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency in the capital came to deliver a letter to Gu Ying.
MO Ruyue looked at the person who had brought the gifts over. He must have been tired and haggard in order to have a quick meal in the open. Moreover, he hade alone.
Gu Ying kept the things and told the man to rest for the night and leave tomorrow. The man did not refuse. He had been traveling for more than two days and was indeed very tired.
MO Ruyue realized that when they came back, they had to bring along the messenger and the previous one. This kind of escort agency was a bit rigid. when escorting things, the big Items were sent by a team. For small Items like letters, one person had to deliver them alone. It was too much of a waste of manpower.
MO Ruyue suddenly thought of a good idea.
Didnt your Xue Family Bodyguard Agency think of setting up a spot in every county and town?
In that case, whether its to deliver things or letters, itll definitely be much faster thaning and going alone. Itll save you trouble and effort. Gu Yings interest was piqued when he heard MO Ruyues question.
Do you have any good ideas?
Look, you have to deliver a letter for someone else. Is the fee expensive?
Of course. Otherwise, our messengers would havee so far for nothing. We would have to pay for food and drinks on the way.
Seeing MO Ruyues expression, Gu Ying must have thought of a good idea. He couldnt help but look forward to it.
In any case, your Xue Family Bodyguard Agency is in the business of escorting people, and you also ept the task of delivering letters.
Let me give you an example. For example, if someone from the capitales to deliver something to you again, he will have to rest at night. It will take two days to drive at full speed and he will be exhausted. Its not worth it for two people.
If you set up a checkpoint in every vige, county, and town, the distance between two viges would only be about ten miles. It would take a horse to finish a cup of tea.
Weve been living in viges all the way from the capital. Even if its not the case in other ces, they shouldnt be too far apart.
Because this area was close to the capital, the viges were rtively dense.
There was basically no vige more than ten miles away.
Most of the viges were about three to five miles apart.
If there is a fixed point between each vige, you can set the time yourself. Each vige will be prepared in advance. When thest person arrives at the next vige, the goods will be handed over to the fixed point of the vige. The vige will immediately take the goods and leave. When they arrive at the next vige, they will go back and forth.
Moreover, you can receive more at once. This way, you can earn back the manpower you spent and save money.
Gu Ying seemed to understand, but he didnt. However, he stared at MO Ruyue with sparkling eyes. He felt that if he followed MO Ruyues suggestion, it would be feasible.
Tell me more about the process in detail.
MO Ruyue simply took a pen and paper and exined to him while drawing a picture. It was actually the express delivery model of theter generations..
Chapter 496 - 496: You’re the Biggest in Our Family
Chapter 496: Youre the Biggest in Our Family
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Wonderful, wonderful!
Gu Ying held the simplified drawing and exnation that MO Ruyue had drawn. It was as if he had obtained a treasure. Why didnt he think of this?
Indeed, doing so could greatly increase efficiency and not reduce the amount of money earned.
Although each order didnt seem to be much, it umted.
Even the most ordinary people would be willing to send a letter to their families for a few to ten copper coins.
Usually, there were very few people who sent things because the lowest price for a single trip was two taels of silver. Those who were close would choose to take a day to go personally. If they really had no choice, they could only spend that high price to hire a bodyguard agency.
ording to MO Ruyues words, they could give him a gift without having to pay such a high fee.
MO Ruyue looked at Gu Yings happy face. She was quite happy that she could help him solve his problem.
However, she still had one more thing to do.
Let me tell you something else. Look at the chickens, ducks, and rabbits all over the mountains. Theyre all ready to be ughtered. If we dont kill them now, theylly eggs and hatch chicks. The rabbits are even in nests. Soon, the mountains wont be able to hold them all. We have to consume some of them.
Is the Hua family unable to eat?
When Gu Ying came back this time, he also found that there were livestock everywhere on the mountain.
I can eat it, but they used to have a supply. Now that Ive suddenly stepped in, the previous supply will probably decrease.
Wouldnt that incur hatred?
I have a better idea.
Gu Ying saw that MO Ruyue was especially willing to share her thoughts and family matters with him during this period of time in the capital. Gu Ying especially liked the feeling that they were a family.
Although MO Ruyue had been avoiding the previous question, he was not in a hurry to ask.
Now, everything was slowly developing in a good direction.
What do you have in mind? Ill do it.
You see, there are so many people in your sanatorium. Other than nting that little bit ofnd, theres nothing else to do. They have many people and are very diligent. I saw that they were idle for most of the day, and they were so idle that they felt a little anxious. Why dont you let them learn some skills? Arent you going to open a literature and martial arts academy?
There will probably be a lot of people. In the future, you will definitely have to take care of their food.
Im going to sell these things on the mountain anyway. Every family in our vige has so many of them. Why dont we start this business ourselves and earn more?
You mean to let them learn how to cook?
Gu Ying understood what MO Ruyue meant, but he doubted whether those rough men who had fought on the battlefield could hold a kitchen knife and cut vegetables properly.
Dont cut off your fingers.
MO Ruyue naturally saw Gu Yings concern.
Arent you underestimating them?
You have so many people. You can ask around. If there are people who are interested in cooking, you can try to nurture them.
Even if theyre not interested, I have a way to get them to open this restaurant.
The vige is going to build two inns. Its a pity that theres no food in these inns.
In the few days that she had been back, she felt that the vige was more lively than before because of her identity as a princess.
Because Gu Ying wanted to open the Civil and Martial Arts Institute, people often came to inquire about it. When they saw that the Institute was almostpleted, they all said that they would send their children over.
Those who came to study would definitelye and go. As long as there was a lot of traffic, no matter what business they did, they could do it.
MO Ruyue felt that West River Vige should not be far from bing a lively and popr area.
Even if she did not take the initiative, she would not be too bad in the future.
Since she had be the owner of Lianshan County, she had to make Lianshan County rich.
Their mountains and rivers were good, so there was no reason to leave them unused.
Since they were going to build it, of course, they would start from where she lived and expand outwards.
She had only been back for a few days, but there were already more than ten people who came to see her for treatment. Not to mention others, just these people who came to see her could drive a lot of business every day.
There were also people from other viges who usually had nothing to do. When they saw the bustling Xihehe Vige, they liked to visit the vige when they had nothing to do.
If there were snacks that the children liked to eat in the vige, then those who came and went with children would probably be unable to resist buying one or two of them.
Soon, West River Vige would be very prosperous.
Alright then. You can do whatever you want. Anyway, we have plenty of people in our family.
Gu Ying acted as if he was the boss in the family, and MO Ruyue was a little embarrassed to continue chatting with him.
Then go ahead. Im going out.
Gu Ying still wanted to chat with MO Ruyue for a while longer. Seeing how she was running away, he really wanted to pull her back, but he was afraid of scaring her.
He still had a lot of things to do. After this period of time, he had to find a way to get MO Ruyue to give him an answer.
Everyone in MO Ruyues house was busy. In fact, there were only three people in the house, including the master and the two little ones. There were about ten to twenty servants. It was unknown how there were so many things to do every day.
He didnt see the two little ones at the moment. They should have gone to the hospital.
Tang Tang was particrly keen to help her manage those apprentices. MO Ruyue was also happy to let her go, so she could learn more about how to conduct herself.
As the older brother, Si Bao and his sister were inseparable from the things that happened to Tang Tang at the hospital every day. Whatever they talked to those people during the day, they would talk to MO Ruyue in detail when they returned at night. MO Ruyue would then analyze and exin everything to the two little fellows.
MO Ruyue did not know who these two children had learned it from. She remembered that she had never taught them that way.
In front of others, they would act like innocent little kids who didnt know anything, but in the midst of ying, they would remember everything that outsiders said. If they didnt understand, they would ask her when they came back at night.
Seeing MO Ruyue return, Chun Hua hurriedly poured her a ss of water.
Madam, the servants have already prepared two rooms.
These two rooms, together with the original one, were left with an empty room for the doctors from the capital.
Alright, thank you for your hard work.
She took a sip of water and Chun Hua automatically stood behind MO Ruyue to massage her shoulders.
Chun Hua felt that the princess had been busy all day long and was very tired. Her heart ached. How could there be a princess who was as busy as her princess?
However, there were many things that others could not help with. They could not help the princess even if they wanted to. They could only try their best to do what they could.
The two nannies saw that MO Ruyue was busy trying to persuade her several times, but the Princess told them that people would rust if they didnt move.
The princess was a doctor, and the doctors words were of utmost importance. They could only obey.
The two nannies no longer dared to argue with the princess, so they only wanted to massage the princess more every day to make her feel more rxed.
Therefore, as long as MO Ruyue sat down, no matter if it was Chun Hua Qiu Shi, Xiayu Dongxue, or Granny Rong, Granny Yan, or the others, as long as MO Ruyue sat down, someone woulde over to massage her shoulders and back..
Chapter 497 - 497: A Comfortable Child
Chapter 497: A Comfortable Child
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Seeing that it was almost lunchtime, MO Ruyue gave up on the idea of going to the mountain to catch chickens and teach the people in the sanatorium how to cook. She thought of taking an afternoon nap before going there.
Madam, theres a doctor from the vige outside. His name is Quan
Yongyuan. He wants to see you.
Chun Hua was sweeping the floor outside the second courtyard when a servant came to report that someone was looking for her. She asked who hade in to report.
Granny Rong and Granny Yan had said that although their princesss residence was small, she had to abide by the rules.
If the princess was outside, then there was no need to say anything. However, at home, the first gate must be reported to the second gate, and then the second gate would report to their princess.
MO Ruyue saw that they didnt mind the effort, so she didnt bother with them.
She had also seen that ever since Granny Rong and Granny Yan returned to the vige, they were not used to the atmosphere in the vige, so she did not deprive them of this hobby.
Let him in.
Soon, Quan Yongyuan came to the backyard and saw Chun Hua massaging MO Ruyues shoulders. He quickly bowed to MO Ruyue.
Yongyuan greets Doctor Mo.
Theres no need to be so polite. Sit down.
Once MO Ruyue returned to the vige, she was afraid that when the vigers heard that she had be a princess, they would greet her first.
She had wanted to find the vige chief and have a good talk with the vigers, but she was afraid that the vigers would think that she was deliberately using her identity to remind them to greet her.
Just as she was thinking about what to do, she was relieved that the people in the vige had been treating her as usual these few days. Although there was more respect in their eyes, it was fortunate that they did not have to kowtow to her when they met.
She didnt expect Quan Yongyuan to be so polite.
Of course, Quan Yongyuan also knew that MO Ruyues identity had changed. If the old vige chief had not told them about this during a meeting, he would probably have to kowtow to MO Ruyue when they met.
Quan Yongyuan and Luo Tiancai had always been very busy. Ever since the two of them were stationed in Xihe Vige, the nearby vigers knew that they were doctors and many people came to see them all day.
MO Ruyue had been away for more than a month. Now that she was back, the two of them wanted to give MO Ruyue the consultation fees they had collected from the patients they had treated in the past month. Therefore, Quan Yongyuan came.
Doctor MO, this is 50% of the consultation fees weve collected over the past month. This is the ount book, please take a look.
MO Ruyue personally took the ount book and money and ced them on the table, but she did not intend to read them now.
Are you and Doctor Luo used to living here?
Im used to it. Doctor Luo and I have already discussed it. After a while, we n to buy a piece ofnd from the vige chief and build our own house. We will live here often in the future. You two can decide for yourselves.
If you have any questions, just say it.
Not to mention the others, ever since the two physicians, Quan and Luo, appeared, MO Ruyues burden of seeing patients had been reduced by more than half.
Quan Yongyuans eyes lit up when he heard MO Ruyues words.
He and Luo Tiancai had already umted a lot of questions and were just about to ask them. They had thought that it would be inconvenient for MO Ruyue to be a princess, but since she had asked them herself, there was nothing inconvenient.
Quan Yongyuan went back happily, ready to share the good news with Luo Tiancai. The two of them coulde over to ask questions in the evening. There were still patients at the moment, so they couldnt leave.
After Quan Yongyuan left, MO Ruyue did not even bother to look at the ount book. She decided to wait for Tang Tang and Si Bao toe back in the evening and bring them to look at it so that they could learn some ounting skills.
MO Ruyue wanted to know how much Quan Yongyuan and the others had earned in the past month. Most of the patients in the vige were only showing symptoms like a cold.
However, she was quite surprised when she saw that Quan Yongyuan had brought her almost twenty taels of silver.
No wonder they were always busy. They were probably treating patients all day long.
MO Ruyue wasnt considered poor now. She could be considered rich. However, this almost twenty taels of silver was still money in her eyes. She was quite happy about it. Who wouldnt like a free silver?
After dinner, MO Ruyue told the two kids not to go out to y and to apany her for an afternoon nap. Children needed more sleep to grow up faster.
When she woke up, she would bring them along to teach them how to cook.
MO Ruyue woke up with the two children. They got up and prepared to go up the mountain to catch chickens and ducks. When they went out, they found two chickens and ducks on the stone table in the courtyard.
Gu Ying knew that MO Ruyue would definitely use it today, so he went to catch it for her.
Moreover, they were all washed carefully. Even the chicken offal was washed clean and ced in the bowl.
Mother, where are we going with these chickens and ducks?
Arent you going to cook at home tonight?
MO Ruyue looked at Si Baao and Tang Tang, who insisted on helping her carry her things. Although the two little children had grown a lot in the past year, they still found it difficult to carry the big basket because they had to lift their arms up or the basket would drag the floor.
Lets go to the sanatorium and teach those uncles how to cook. What do you think?
Wow, dont they know how to cook?
As Tang Tang spoke, she switched the basket from left to right.
Miss, why dont you let this servant help you get it?
Qiu Shi looked at the little girl who was carrying a big vegetable basket. The chicken inside was fat and big. Even if the feathers were removed and washed clean, it still weighed three to four pounds.
She was really afraid that he would tire the young miss out.
There were so many servants in the house, but they were all watching from the side. However, the young miss and the young master tried their best to do their own things and rarely called them.
ording to their observations, before they came, Madam had assigned the young miss and the young master with personal maids and manservants.
The young miss and young master were both exceptionally beautiful and adorable, and they were also so sensible. The hearts of these maidservants melted.
Even the two nannies were exceptionally kind to the young miss and the young master.
Thank you, Sister Qiu Shi. Theres no need. Were almost there. I can do it myself.
Tang Tang thanked Qiu Shi politely. Actually, the chicken wasnt heavy for her. The main thing was that the basket was a little too high. She needed to eat more and grow it taller.
Qiu Shi was already used to Tang Tang calling her sister. Since the first day they arrived home, the two children had called them sister and auntie.
In the beginning, they did not dare to respond. They were just servants and were afraid that MO Ruyue would get angry. They only dared to respond after MO Ruyue nodded.
Then can this servant help you carry young masters basket?
Qiu Shi saw that Tang Tang couldnt convince her, so she went to coax Si Bao.
My younger sister took it herself. Im the older brother. I cant be worse than my younger sister.
Its this servants fault.
Our young miss and young master are both responsible and capable.
Not only was he sensible, but he also understood a lot of reason. Thinking about those children in the capital who were as old as their young master and young miss, they would cry all day long when they were unhappy.
At first, when they came back and saw the appearance of the young miss and young master, they were very surprised. They actually looked exactly like General Xue.
She had thought that General Xue and the Princess were husband and wife, but after staying in the capital for more than a month, no one knew.
In the end, the young miss and the young master addressed General Xue as Uncle. In just two days, they had also heard some things about the young miss and the young masters biological father. Only then did they understand what was going on.
However, anyone with discerning eyes could see that General Xue treated their Princess differently. However, these things were not things that they, as servants, could blindly think about.
No matter what, as long as the young master and young miss belonged to their family, it was enough..
Chapter 498 - 498: Collecting Honey
Chapter 498: Collecting Honey
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When they were about to reach the sanatorium, they met Chen Shitou.
Chen Shitou was holding a big jar in his arms, which was wrapped in oilpaper. His eyes lit up when he saw MO Ruyue and the others, and he quickly walked over.
Doctor MO, where are you going?
Look, this is honey that has been raised for more than 200 days. Its edible now. The fragrance of Chinese milk vetch in the honey is very sweet. I wonder if the young master and young miss like it. If they like it, Ill go and cut two jarster.
Chen Shitou saw the baskets in the hands of the two children. There were washed chickens and ducks in them. Looking at their direction, they should be heading toward the sanatorium.
When MO Ruyue saw him carrying a huge jar, she had a thought in her heart. She didnt expect it to really be honey, so she immediately perked up.
She had not eaten any other sweets since she came here except for candied haws. As for the hawthorn and desserts sold on the street, she did not really like them.
Come, lets go to the sanatorium and try it out.
Did you get a lot of honey?
How much can a bee bucket offer?
MO Ruyue thought that if the price was too low, she would not sell this years beekeepers. It might not even be enough for her family. If possible, she would buy more from other beekeepers to store.
Coincidentally, she had to teach the veterans how to cook. This honey was also a very useful kitchen seasoning.
When MO Ruyue brought her people to the sanatorium, there were not many people in the courtyard. Most of the people who could move their limbs freely had gone to work in the tields. Those who stayed at home were either disabled in their legs or hands.
There were two older men in the courtyard who were sunbathing. When they saw MO Ruyue and her child, they immediately stood up in a panic to wee them warmly.
Doctor MO, pleasee in and sit.
You all go in and sit. Ill make tea for you.
MO Ruyue looked at the ex-soldiers happy expression and did not stop him. She gave Qiu Shi a look, asking her to follow him and help.
If you dont want the tea leaves, just warm water will do. I can try this honey to see if it tastes good.
Yes.
Tang Tang and Si Bao had already ced the baskets in their hands on the table with Granny Rongs help. They were afraid that cats and dogs would drag them away if they were ced on the floor.
When the two little fellows were walking on the road, they knew that the jar in Chen Shitous arms was filled with sweet honey. At this moment, they could not wait to go to Chen Shitou.
Chen Shitou had already removed the oil paper on the jar.
Since there was no need to brew tea leaves, only a few cups of warm water were quickly served.
Xia Yu had already gone to find a spoon to wash and give it to MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue scooped out a spoonful of crystal-clear honey from the jar. The honey was golden in color, and because she had scooped too much, the excess honey flowed down the side of the spoon and into the jar. The light golden honey was crystal-clear and looked particrly alluring.
Wow, it smells so good!
Yes.
Tang Tang looked at the honey with sparkling eyes. Her mouth was wide open and almost drooled. Si Bao pursed his lips, obviously not letting his saliva flow out.
Try it quickly. Is it sweet?
MO Ruyue stuffed a spoonful into each childs mouth.
She tasted a spoonful herself and asked Qiu Shi to bring another spoon over. She scooped it into the cups of warm water again.
Wow, its so sweet. Its so delicious!
Tang Tang sighed after melting the honey in her mouth.
The honey was soft, fragrant, sweet, and smooth. It was really delicious.
Si Bao also felt that it was very sweet, but his sister had already finished describing it, so he could only nod.
Because the bees in our house have been able to collect honey for more than 200 days. It means that they have never stopped. The source of honey is very good, so the honey we collect is much more than that of other people.
This jar can hold five catties. Our familys bee bucket can hold ten jars other than the ones we have to leave for the bees to pass the winter.
We have more than 30 beehives at home, which can hold at least 300 jars of honey.
300 jars meant that there were at least 1500 catties.
Although it wasnt much, MO Ruyue felt that it was quite a lot. In this era, productivity was very low, so this should be considered a big harvest. She didnt see Chen Shitous beaming face, so she was obviously very satisfied.
Wow, there are so many!
Then can we eat honey every day?
Tang Tang raised her head and asked MO Ruyue, hoping to get the answer she wanted.
Yes.
Of course, the family would eat their fill first before selling the rest.
Oh, great!
Grandpa will be back tomorrow. Lets give him a few jars. Can we give Aunty and the others a jar to try?
Tang Tang counted the people who treated her well with her fingers. She thought that even if she had honey to eat, she couldnt forget about them.
Tang Tang can give as many gifts as she wants.
MO Ruyue looked at the two children who were smiling so widely that their eyes looked like the moon. She picked up a cup of warm water and took two sips to reduce the sweetness in her mouth.
Fortunately, this honey had the effect of nourishing the throat. It was not as sweet as sugar. It tasted sweet with a floral fragrance. It was still very delicious and was more suitable to be drunk in water.
Even if its delicious, you can only eat a spoonful at most every day. It cant be eaten as rice.
Si Bao and Tang Tang nodded.
Mother, dont worry. Ill keep an eye on my younger sister and wont let her eat too much and have her teeth decay.
Because Tang Tang liked to eat sweets, MO Ruyue often taught them about the dangers of tooth decay. Therefore, the two little fellows also knew that eating too much sweets and not brushing their teeth before going to bed at night would cause tooth decay.
They still remembered how Brother Goudan had been eating sweets a while ago. He had been eating them secretly even though he was not allowed to eat them. In the end, several of his teeth had turned ck. He oftenined about the pain and could only watch them eat delicious food.
Therefore, the two little fellows still paid great attention to protecting their teeth.
Be good.
MO Ruyue was never stingy with her praises for the two obedient children. She looked at Chen Shitou and asked.
I remember that there were many families in the vige who raised honey with you. Help me ask them if they want to sell anything.
Chen Shitou nodded. Then Ill help you collect them.
Wait a moment.
MO Ruyue saw Chen Shitou turn around and run out of the room. She quickly called out to him.
If she asked Chen Shitou to help her collect honey, she would have to pay him. Chen Shitou definitely could not take out the money to help her pay, but she still had something to do in the sanatorium.
Ask them today. If they have anything to sell, ask them to pack it in a small jar like you did. When they pack it, be sure to pay attention to hygiene.
Doctor MO, dont worry. I will definitely supervise them to make sure the honey is clean.
Then Ill have to trouble you.
Chen Shitou, who was clumsy with his words, quickly shook his head and waved his hand when MO Ruyue called him troublesome. This is what I should do.
Alright, I wont stand on ceremony with you. Go ahead and do your work. If theres anything that the beginning of spring and rainwater can do, try your best to let them do it.
Just let me know if you need help..
Chapter 499 - 499: Fried Chicken
Chapter 499: Fried Chicken
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After Chen Shitou left, MO Ruyue noticed that many people in the room were looking at them. She simply asked Chun Hua, Qiu Shi and the others to pour a cup of water for everyone present. She then added a spoonful of honey into each cup and mixed it evenly.
Come, everyone try it.
Those veterans had originally thought that this sweet honey water was not something that rough old men like them could drink. It was simply a waste of Gods gift.
However, MO Ruyue had already asked Chun Hua and the others to prepare it for her. They happily and gratefully epted the honey water with both hands.
It tasted extremely sweet in their mouths. They had never tasted such delicious honey water in their lives.
Uncle, whats your name? Whos in charge of your kitchen?
MO Ruyue used toe here often to check the pulse of these veterans. However, because there were so many of them and many of them were of simr age, she only remembered a few of them who were seriously injured and had lost their arms and legs. However, she did not know their names.
Doctor MO, you tter me. I dont dare to take your name. This old man, Liu Yushan, has no strength and cant do heavy work.
MO Ruyue didnt expect that she would ask about the main character.
Thats good, Uncle Liu. I came here today to discuss something with you.
When Liu Yushan heard that MO Ruyue hade to discuss something with him, his excitement immediately turned into nervousness and he stood up.
If theres anything, Doctor MO can just instruct us.
As long as he could do it, he would definitely do it for MO Ruyue. Even if he couldnt do it, he would try his best to think of a way.
Uncle Liu, dont be nervous. Its a simple matter for me to look for you. Liu Yushan knew that he had gone overboard, so he quickly sat back down and waited for MO Ruyue to tell him what to do.
Look, Ill teach you how to make delicious food today. In the future, you can eat it yourself) and you can also make and sell it.
Look, our vige is developing better and better now. Peoplee and go. If you learn this dish well, you can definitely make money.
Uncle Liu, do you want to learn?
Can I do this?
Liu Yushan didnt know if what he did could be sold for money, and whether he could learn it well was another matter. But since MO Ruyue wanted to teach him, he was surprised.
Everyone in the vige knew that Doctor MO was not only good at medicine, but also good at cooking.
Usually, her familys cooking skills would not be taught to outsiders. Now that she wanted to teach him, he thought about it and understood.
There were really many people in their courtyard, and many of them could not go out to work. Just relying on those who could go out, they were also tired.
Everyone would grow old one day. What would they do then? Who could they rely on?
As long as you want to learn, theres nothing you cant do. The dish Im going to teach you is very simple.
Seeing the old man like this, MO Ruyue knew that he was tempted.
Lets go to the kitchen now. Those who are usually busy in the kitchen with Uncle Liu and are interested cane and learn together.
MO Ruyue motioned for Chun Hua and the others to pick up the two baskets with the chickens and ducks on the table and follow her to the kitchen.
In the end, eight people followed behind them. They were all old men. Some were limping, some had broken palms, and one had broken an arm.
Although these people were old, the oldest was only in their early forties.
Tang Tang and Si Bao followed Mo Ruyue and the others into the kitchen. The two children were especially interested in the delicious food that their mother had mentioned earlier.
When she entered the kitchen, she found that none of the old men came to help. The kitchen was actually very clean and neat. It was even cleaner than some of the families in the vige who had wives.
However, MO Ruyue still could not find the condiments she wanted after searching for a while. It seemed that these people did not know how to use condiments.
Xia Yu, go home and get a portion of all the seasonings in the kitchen. Bring some of those spices and some flour.
Xia Yu quickly brought the condiments over while MO Ruyue was holding a sharp bamboo skewer that Qiu Shi and the others had specially prepared for her. Now, she and Qiu Shi were pricking the skin of the two chickens and ducks with many small holes.
As she was pricking, MO Ruyue noticed Granny Rong standing beside her. MO Ruyue raised the bamboo stick in front of Granny Rong.
Granny Rong, why dont you do it for a while?
Yes.
Granny Rong hurriedly took the bamboo stick from MO Ruyue.
Granny Rong had long wanted to take the bamboo stick from MO Ruyue.
This kind of rough work should indeed be done by their servants. How could they let the princess do it herself?
After Granny Rong took the bamboo stick, Dong Xue took a handkerchief and wiped MO Ruyues hands.
MO Ruyue allowed Dong Xue to wipe her hands. She was used to being served by them in the capital and was already used to it.
MO Ruyue was staring intently at Granny Rong, who was holding a bamboo stick and stabbing it into the duck skin. Then, she looked at Qiu Shi beside her. Inparison, Granny Rong was indeed Granny Rong. Even though she had crossed time and space, her actions were still the same.
Granny Rong remembered MO Ruyues words. She had to pierce through everything. She checked to make sure that she didnt miss anything. Then, she turned around and asked MO Ruyue carefully.
Madam, do you think this is good?
Thats enough.
Granny Rong, did you feel happy just now?
Granny Rong?
Cough!
Chun Hua put some of the seasonings and flour into a te.
Chun Hua went to do what MO Ruyue wanted, while MO Ruyue exined the steps to Liu Yushan and the others.
Im going to teach you how to make fried chicken.
This was well made. It was crispy on the outside and juicy on the inside. Whether it was an old man in his sixties or a child as young as three years old, everyone would definitely love it.
Stick it on the skin of the chicken and duck so that it would be more vorful when you apply the paintter. That way, the fried meat would be more delicious.
First, rub them with onions and ginger to remove the fishy smell.
Actually, it was best to sprinkle some white wine, but thinking that this thing was expensive in this era, it was fortunate that there were two vors that could remove the fishy smell of herbs, so that step was saved.
When MO Ruyue was speaking, not only were the veterans listening, even Granny Rong and the four maidservants were listening to every word.
Si Bao and Tang Tang stood on their tiptoes, watching MO Ruyues movements and listening to her detailed exnation.
MO Ruyue didnt want to make it tooplicated. She was afraid that they wouldnt be able to remember it and learn it. She added some pepper powder, two other spices to remove the fishy smell, and salt. Finally, she brushed a thinyer of honey on the skin and covered it with flour.
Some seasonings were also added to the flour to make it taste better.
This flour is too little to wrap once. It wont be crispy when fried. We can pat a little water on it and then go through it again.
In fact, if you want it to taste better, it would be better to use egg liquid instead of water.
Because time was a little tight now, it was best to marinate the chicken for more than an hour when the seasoning was applied to the chicken. Only then would the fried chicken taste better.
Start the oil pan now.
The one with a broken leg heard MO Ruvues words and quickly limped over to
the stove to fill the fire. The other one with a right hand poured oil into the pot.
The two of them were so nervous that they were afraid that MO Ruyue would not like them doing a bad job.
However, when everyone saw them like this, no one went forward to help.
This made them feel that they were still useful..
Chapter 500 - 500: Accepting Disciples
Chapter 500: epting Disciples
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue prepared to cook the duck in soy sauce, which was rtively simple.
She stuffed the duck into a y pot, then wrapped it with oil, salt, soy sauce, sugar, star anise, bay leaves, and a few other spices in a cotton cloth. She added water to soak the duck, then boiled it over high heat and simmered it over low heat for 15 minutes. She left it there for more than two hours before fishing it out.
The duck was on fire, and the oil pan was already eighty percent hot. MO Ruyue was about to put the flour-coated chicken into the pan when Liu
Yushan hurriedly took it from her hands, afraid that the oil would burn MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue felt that it was fine to let him try it out. She would check the temperature of the fried things and turn over the fried things to make the color of the whole chicken more uniform so that it would not be charred on the outside and not cooked on the inside.
Soon, the fragrance wafted out from the kitchen. The burnt smell of fried chicken and the sauced duck were also boiling. The fragrance wafted far away.
The chicken had to be fried twice, and Liu Yushan had to do it himself. After doing it himself, he felt more confident.
Arge group of people had been busy in the kitchen for the entire afternoon, but there was still some effect. The duck still had to be soaked in the sauce pot for another four hours, but the fried chicken could be eaten once it was out of
the pot.
Tang Tang was the first to lose her patience. She was a greedy little cat. When she smelled the fragrance of fried chicken, she couldnt hold it in any longer. She followed Liu Yushan, and her mother couldnt care less.
Liu Yushan broke a big chicken drumstick for Tang Tang and Si Bao.
Young Miss, Young Master, quickly try it. Is it delicious?
The two little fellows did not mind the heat. They grabbed it and blew on it. Each of them took a small bite. The crunchy sound was very pleasant to everyones ears.
Good, good!
After the two little fellows answered Liu Yushans question, they ignored the others and raised the uneaten part of the drumstick in front of MO Ruyue. Mother, eat it. Its delicious, fragrant, and crispy. Its a little spicy and fresh. This time, it was Si Bao who spoke first, and it was Tang Tang who nodded in agreement.
MO Ruyue didnt hesitate to take a bite of each drumstick. The outer skin was crispy, but it was still a littlecking. However, it was already very good for him to make it this way for the first time.
Everyone, try it.
MO Ruyue didnt say anything. She smiled and nodded at Liu Yushan. Liu
Yushan quickly cut the chicken into small pieces and gave everyone a piece.
A chicken wasnt considered too small, but there were many people, so one piece for each person was gone.
What do you guys think? MO Ruyue asked everyone.
Delicious!
MO Ruyue ordered her men to go to the back of the mountain to catch more than ten chickens. Liu Yushan continued to experiment. The more dishes he cooked, the more experienced he became.
After these dozen chickens were processed, the sauce duck could also be eaten.
After that, everyone busied themselves in the kitchen for the entire afternoon. They ate for the entire afternoon and were not hungry until dinner time.
But at the same time, it also opened up a new world for everyone. It turned out that chickens and ducks could be eaten like this.
Gu Ying, who had just finished his business outside, smelled a particrly pleasant fragrance the moment he entered the vige. It was a smell he had never smelled before, and it was from the sanatorium.
He couldnt be med for having a sharp nose. No one had started cooking yet.
Fried chicken and sauced duck were originally food with a strong taste. With a slight breeze, the whole vige was filled with fragrance.
It seemed that MO Ruyue was already teaching the veterans.
At this time, the people working outside began to enter the vige one after another. They also smelled the fragrance. A few of them followed the smell and smelled it outside the sanatorium.
They were curious. When did the old men in the sanatorium be so good at cooking?
Chen Shitou was carrying a jar in his arms. Behind him were many people carrying baskets filled with jars. They all entered West River Vige.
As soon as they entered the vige, they could smell the strange fragrance.
Shitou, what are you doing?
Wang Dazhu carried his daughter and son in each hand and was about to go and see where the fragrance came from. However, when he saw Chen Shitous lineup, he came over curiously. When he saw the sealed jars, he became even more curious.
Chen Shitou immediately smiled and teased the two children.
This honey can be produced. They cant finish it at home and want to sell it.
Doctor MO just happened to be collecting it, so I brought it over.
Is there any extra? Can you spare me one or two jars?
When Wang Dazhu heard that the honey was edible, he thought of the pair of children he was carrying. As for Wang Fugui, he had long stopped thinking about him. That child was already 13 or 14 years old and was about to be an adult. Why would he eat honey?
Even if his youngest son and daughter could not eat it now, his wife could.
Alright, Ill help you ask the others tomorrow.
Chen Shitou was still very willing to help with such a small matter.
Hearing Chen Shitous words, Wang Dazhu knew that MO Ruyue wanted all of these. If he wanted them, he would have to buy them from someone else. Then you should hurry up and get busy.
Hey, then Ill be leaving, Brother Wang.
As soon as MO Ruyue and the others came out of the sanatorium, they saw Chen Shitou leading a group of people. They were all carrying the same jars that Chen Shitou had brought over earlier.
He had brought people to sell honey.
Xia Yu, go back with them to find Xiao Shuang and ask her to settle the bill for these people.
MO Ruyue turned to Chen Shitou and said, I have something to do now. You can go to Xiao Shuang directly. She knows how to settle the ounts. Just tell her how much a jar costs.
Chen Shitou knew that MO Ruyue was a busy person. After hearing her nod, he brought his men to the Qin family.
As for whether Qin Qingshuang could do a good job, since MO Ruyue had said so, he would not doubt it.
Mother, can I skip dinner? Im full.
Im full too.
Si Bao and Tang Tang came out rubbing their stomachs.
Qiu Shi and Dong Xue, who were following behind them, each held a basket in their hands. In the basket were two fried chickens and two sauced ducks. However, they were all cut into pieces and neatly ced on a te with a cloth covering them. Even so, the fragrance wafted wherever it went.
The people who followed Chen Shitou turned back to look at them from time to time as they walked.
Mother is also full. We wont eat tonight. These are for your aunt and uncle.
Then can I still drink a cup of honey water?
You cant even eat, can you still drink water?
MO Ruyue deliberately did not agree, nor did she say no.
Im just walking home. Ill walk around the vige and digest my food. Ill be able to drink honey water when I have some free time.
Tang Tang immediately ran to MO Ruyues side and held her hand coquettishly.
Then our Tang Tang will apany Mother to the outside of the vige.
When wee back, we will make you honey water to drink. How about it? Alright, alright, lets go now.
Tang Tang didnt even go home. She pulled MO Ruyue along and was about to go to the ce she said she wanted to go.
Take that one home. You dont have to follow me. MO Ruyue turned around and said to Dong Xue.
Yes.
Gu Ying did not return home. He followed MO Ruyue and the others to the Princesss manor that was under construction outside the vige.
The group of people walked there. After walking for less than ten minutes, they passed by the Civil and Martial Arts College.
Since the construction here ispleted, shouldnt it be time to ept disciples?
MO Ruyue said this to Gu Ying.
Yes, Im already collecting them. Someone should being over tomorrow or the day after. Ill be a little busy outside and wont have much time at home, but you still have to tell me if theres anything.
If you want to be busy, go ahead. Im at home all day anyway, so theres not much I can do now..
Chapter 501 - 501: New Dishes
Chapter 501: New Dishes
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Actually, MO Ruyue wanted to say it directly. She could do her own thing and did not need his help at all. However, Gu Ying had actually helped her a lot. It was too hurtful to say it like that.
After all, Gu Ying was not an ordinary outsider.
Gu Ying understood the meaning behind MO Ruyues words, but he did not say anything else.
He knew that MO Ruyue had always been very capable and self-reliant. She was not inferior to any other woman. Therefore, he had been busier than before. He only wanted to improve himself, hoping that he could be a better match for her.
She would often sleep until midnight wondering if he had gone overboard by saying such one-sided words to MO Ruyue.
Sometimes, he would think that if MO Ruyue did not answer him, he would not ask her about it. It would be good to maintain their current rtionship. Mother, I heard them say that this is a house built for our family, right?
Mother has be a princess, can you still let big brother fight for the imperial title for you?
MO Ruyue wondered if her words just now had been too distant. She was thinking of something to lighten the atmosphere when Tang Tang ran over and started bbering, which helped her out.
Yes, I havent thought about that either. I dont know either. Why dont our Si Bao work hard to grow up and give it a try?
Okay, I will work hard. Si Bao nodded seriously.
MO Ruyue felt a little regretful when she saw his expression. This child was not like a child at all.
As they spoke, they arrived at the main entrance of the princess manor that was under construction. There was a row of eight houses next to it that had been built. They were the residences of the people from the Ministry of Works who had built the house for her. Meng Xun was also temporarily staying here.
The courtyard of the princesss manor had been built, so there was definitely not even a small part of it built. Perhaps the foundation had not been dug yet.
When the courtyard was first erected, it was to prevent outsiders from seeing the structure inside. This was a secret.
Meng Xun also happened to see MO Ruyue and the others. He hurriedly came out to wee them, thinking that MO Ruyue was here to supervise them.
This subordinate greets Princess Ming Yue!
Theres no need to be so polite.
Meng Xun thought that there was no suitable ce to entertain the Princess. He might as well invite MO Ruyue into his own courtyard. His courtyard was kept clean and tidy, but he really did not dare to let her enter other ces.
It was better not to enter the princesss manor that was under construction at this time because it had just started construction and was rtively messy.
GuYing, on the other hand, went into the princesss manor to check on the progress.
You dont have to be polite. I brought the babies out to digest.
You havent eaten yet, right?
Yes, I havent.
However, we are already preparing.
When Meng Xun heard MO Ruyue say that it would help to digest food, he almost failed to react. Perhaps they had always been living like this.
They would only eat at seven oclock in the evening, sometimes at eight oclock in the evening, so that they could finish the construction of the princesss manor as soon as possible.
Qiu Shi, give the basket to Lord Meng.
Qiu Shi trotted forward and handed the basket containing fried chicken and sauced duck to Meng Xun.
Meng Xun quickly reached out to take it. He did not know what was inside, but he had long smelled a burnt fragrance mixed with the fragrance of the sauce. Now that he had the basket in his hand, he knew the source of the smell.
This is?
Although Meng Xun had some guesses in his heart, he did not understand why
Princess Ming Yue woulde to deliver food to him for no reason. Suddenly, he thought of a possibility. His heart thumped, but he quickly suppressed it.
When he left the capital, the Emperor specially called him over, and the words he had said to him surfaced in his mind.
The Emperor said that Princess Ming Yue was actually single and asked him to help see if there were any young talents suitable to be Princess Ming Yues husband. Even if they became the husband, they could still walk the official path.
At that time, he still didnt understand why the Emperor had specially called him over to say those words. Now, he somewhat understood.
Meng Xun thought of many things.
I thought it would be difficult for you to eat good food here because youre busy because of me. So, I came here to offer you food.
The two dishes in this basket were made by the people in the sanatorium in our vige. They taste quite good.
Try it.
Oh, that sanatorium. It was where the poor people who retired from the battlefield, who were seriously injured, could no longer go to the battlefield, and were homeless lived.
Now that were helping each other in the vige and making delicious food at the same time, we can usually make a living for them. We sell them cheaply, and we basically take care of those in our vige.
This was a new dish that had just been developed today. MO Ruyues words left everyone dumbfounded!
Si Bao and Tang Tang looked at each other and kept quiet.
They were already used to it. If their mother said something different outside, they had to shut up. If they wanted to know why, they had to go home and ask when there were no outsiders.
Even my two children like these two dishes very much. They taste really good.
Lord Meng, try them. I hope you like them.
MO Ruyue felt that her words should be able to move them. Anyway, these people did notck money to eat and drink. They could eat delicious food and help others. This should be themon trait of officials.
Even if they didnt want to eat it, they should have taken care of her often because of what she said just now.
She had specially said it, and her meaning was obvious. This wave of advertisements should be enough.
Many thanks, Princess Ming Yue.
Meng Xun didnt know whether MO Ruyue meant it or not after hearing her words. He was just thinking about how he should interact with them when Gu Ying came out of the Princesss manors courtyard and MO Ruyue left with the children.
Meng Xun opened the basket during dinner and took out tworge dishes. One of them was duck. The red color was very beautiful. It looked very appetizing and he really wanted to eat it.
The other te looked like some kind of meat, but it was wrapped in a golden shell. He had never seen this before, so he picked up a piece first.
It tasted like chicken. He had never tasted the crispy shell, but it tasted really good.
He quickly picked up another piece of sauce duck.
In the end, he couldnt stop eating one after another. Unknowingly, he had finished both dishes by himself, but he didnt touch the rice at all.
These two dishes were indeed delicious, and it was a taste that he had never eaten before. He felt that if he had another te, he would be able to eat it.
After MO Ruyue and the others went back, everyone had more or less digested their food. They each ate some fruits and made a small cup of honey water for the two children before washing up and going to bed.
Gu Yings room at the Qin familys side was still lit up. He was currently writing at his desk.
After writing for a while, he turned off the lights and went to rest. The next morning, he personally delivered the letter he had writtenst night to the town.
If MO Ruyue was here, she would have seen that there was a new Xue Family Bodyguard Agency in this town..
Chapter 502 - 502: Miasma
Chapter 502: Miasma
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gu Ying followed MO Ruyues advice and set up a station in each of the counties. He sent one or two managers to each station and recruited some local people.
After taking on a few business trips, it was just as MO Ruyue had said. Not only did they save time and effort, but they also earned money. Most importantly, the people in the escort agency did not have to work so hard anymore.
Gu Ying asked the manager about the situation and everything was fine. He went home when it was almost noon.
After returning to the vige, he found that the vige was bustling again.
There were quite a lot of people at the entrance of the sanatorium. Most of the vigers were there.
He went out early in the morning and didnt know what had happened at
home. From the looks of it, it shouldnt be anything bad.
Thinking of what MO Ruyue taught the people in the sanatorium yesterday, Gu Ying guessed that it was rted to this matter. He went straight to the sanatorium without even returning home.
Uncles, aunties, brothers, and sisters, dont be anxious. Everyone can have a taste. Lets line up!
When Gu Ying arrived, he found a table at the entrance of the sanatorium. A small figure was standing on the table. Who else could it be but Tang Tang?
The little girl was holding a bamboo tube that was thicker than her arm. Now that she was using the bamboo tube to shout, her voice seemed to have really be louder.
The vigers gave her some face and obediently lined up.
There were many children in front of the group, and there were even a few from other viges.
As soon as the people lined up, someone inside took out a big bamboo basket. In the basket were small pieces of fried chicken that had been cut into golden pieces.
The boy who looked to be five or six years old at the front of the line was drooling.
Tang Tang poked a small piece of fried chicken with the bamboo skewer, drooling non-stop as he handed it to the little boy.
The little boy took it and put it into his mouth. The people who left the line came up one by one. Soon, the big basket of fried chicken was seen.
Fresh crispy fried chicken, exclusive craftsmanship, 25 coins for one portion, 50 coins for two portions, firste, first served!
Dont miss it!
Tang Tangs crisp and tender voice sounded like she was really doing the right thing when she stood on the table and shouted. Everyone looked at her obedient and cute appearance. Moreover, the fried chicken was indeed delicious. A roll of oil paper was full. Twenty-five wen was not considered expensive. Nowadays, every household was not short of money and was willing to spend some money to buy delicious food.
The people in the sanatorium vige had long known what was going on. Everyone usually helped out whenever they could. There were even some kind people who often gave them a basket of vegetables, cucumbers, and so on. Now that they were relying on their own abilities to earn some living expenses, everyone was happy to see it.
Most importantly, fried chicken was indeed delicious.
After some children ate it, they immediately ran home to drag their parents and grandparents, moring to buy it.
The fried chicken and duck in the vige sanatorium were selling like wildfire. The chickens and ducks on Red Moon Mountain were also bing scarce. As for the rabbits, MO Ruyue did not n to let the people in the sanatorium cook them anymore. She kept them for the two inns built by Gu Ying.
The reason why the fried chicken and sauced duck could sell so well was mainly because it was the autumn harvest season again. The vigers were busy again. Once they were busy, they did not have so much time to cook. However, they wanted to eat something good, so business was booming.
Once more people bought it, and the food was really delicious, there would be a virtuous cycle. Even the neighboring viges and towns would have peoplee over to buy it and try it.
The veterans in the sanatorium did not expect MO Ruyue to treat them so well. They were very grateful to MO Ruyue and would send a few fried chicken and duck to MO Ruyues and Qin familys homes every day.
MO Ruyue was a realndlord. When she was nting the second crop of rice, she had nted a lot ofnd and hired people to harvest it. Now, even Gu Ying did not have time to go to the fields.
Gu Ying chose a few people who had sold themselves to him and personally brought them along. He was busy everywhere every day, watching as he trained two of them to be butlers.
At home, MO Ruyue was the only one with dozens of in-name disciples picking cotton with them. The ten female doctors from the pce also wanted to go with them, so MO Ruyue did not refuse.
After they were done picking the cotton, they brought it back to the courtyard and ced it on the drying rack to dry. MO Ruyue then led the group to the lotus pond to dig out lotus roots.
Today was their day off, but MO Ruyue did not let them idle and practice. Although they were female doctors, they still had to know the basics.
As the saying went, it was better to travel a thousand miles than to read ten thousand books. It was also very practical for them. Instead of memorizing the medicinal knowledge all day long, it was better to start from recognizing herbs, picking herbs, and processing herbs.
The ten female doctors from the pce were specially here to learn the essence from Mo Ruyue. They also needed to be educated about medicinal cuisine, so she asked them to make a few dishes today.
Unexpectedly, those who were usually respected and noble did not want to go to the mud in the lotus pond at all. When they reached the edge of the lotus pond, they actually fought to get into the pond. MO Ruyue did not have time to stop them.
Although the water in the pond was not deep, the mud was deep.
Dont go too far in. Its just at the side?
MO Ruyue didnt go down. There were already so many people who had gone down to dig. It would already be good enough if they could finish the food they dug up. She was toozy to go down.
A few brave ones listened to the old people in the vige telling them about the techniques of digging lotus roots. They followed the lotus stem down and touched a few plump lotus roots in the mud. They carefully swayed here and there. In a short while, they tilted a few lotus roots out of the mud.
Wow, mine has three sections!
Mine has four sections!
In fact, these people were still young girls. It was the first time for many of them to have such wild fun. They were very surprised when they sessfully dug out the lotus roots.
Ah. Sun Nu, what happened to you? Wake up, whats wrong with you?
Help! Servant Sun has fainted! Someonee quickly!
Suddenly, a girl near the pond screamed in panic.
Two of them who were close to them went over and helped to drag the unconscious Servant Sun to the shore.
Shes been poisoned. Hurry up and carry her home.
As soon as MO Ruyue finished speaking, they carried Servant Sun home, not caring that they were barefoot.
The others who were holding one or two sections of lotus roots also went ashore and helped to carry her shoes back.
Fortunately, the pond was not far from MO Ruyues house.
Master, where did this miasmae from?
Some people thought that it should be in the pond, but they all went into the pond together, but only Servant Sun was poisoned. This was a little strange.
MO Ruyue went to find the antidote pills. The miasma poison varies from person to person. Some people have a more serious reaction after being infected, while others only have mild nausea and vomiting, or even headaches and chest tightness. There are also some people who cant feel the poison and arepletely fine.
Servant Suns condition was more serious. Fortunately, MO Ruyue always had antidotes on hand. They had a strong backer, so MO Ruyue was always afraid of poisonous insects, snakes, and ants.
Generally, there will be some miasma in the pond. It depends on how much, especially in ponds with mud. The closer it is to the surface of the water, the more serious the miasma is. However, this situation mostly urs in ponds that have been around for a long time.
It was too strange for the pond to have miasma since it hadnt even been a year..
Chapter 503 - 503: Glass Greenhouses
Chapter 503: ss Greenhouses
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue decided to go down to the pond to take a look. She had to find out the reason. There were many children in the vige. It would be bad if one of them wanted to eat lotus roots.
She gave Sun Nu an antidote pill and some water. She woke up in a short while.
Sun Nu still didnt understand what was going on when she woke up. She remembered that they were digging lotus roots in the pond before.
Why was she back in bed? Was she dreaming?
Themotion here also attracted the attention of the other vigers. They all came to ask what was going on.
After Sun Nu woke up, MO Ruyue asked Xia Yu to take care of her. She had to personally go to the pond to take a look.
Mother, you have to be careful. Take a detoxification pill first.
MO Ruyue lovingly stroked Tang Tangs head. This little cotton-padded jacket was really too warm. She ate the pill she handed him. Wait at home obediently. Dont run around.
Yes, Mother, dont worry. I will look after my sister.
Every time MO Ruyue reminded him, Si Bao would stand up like a big brother.
As the four guards assigned by Princess Ming Yue to guard the courtyard, they also went to help harvest the rice today.
Two of them picked up the rice that had been tied up and returned to their own field. They happened to bump into them carrying Sun Nu back. They also understood that Sun Nu was poisoned. Now, how could the two of them still have the mood to work?
Now that MO Ruyue insisted on going into the pond, they did not dare to let her go to a ce where someone had been poisoned.
Many vigers came over to check on the situation. When they saw MO Ruyue going into the pond, they advised her not to.
Madam, let us go.
The two of them jumped into the pond before MO Ruyue.
Then head to the south in front. Try to raise your heads as much as possible.
When you face down, its best not to breathe.
Ill remember it. Dont worry, Madam.
The two of them found two dead chickens three meters away from where Sun Nu had fainted. There was no meat left, only feathers attached to the chicken bones.
That makes sense.
The two of you,e up quickly and go home to wash up and rest.
In front of the vigers, MO Ruyue exined in detail the reason why Sun Nu had been poisoned by the miasma. She especially asked them to take good care of their children, and even the adults themselves.
Even if they wanted to eat lotus roots and had to go down to dig, they had to have apanion to watch over them. It was too dangerous to be alone. The vigers obediently noted it down.
No wonder Auntie Liu from my vige went to dig lotus roots, but I dont understand why she suddenly drowned in the pond. She probably got poisoned by this miasma.
Aunt Chen was using a walking stick to solve an unknown case in her childhood vige.
Sun Nu was poisoned by the miasma. Fortunately, she was discovered in time and nothing major happened. Even so, the few of them were still a little frightened.
However, under MO Ruyuesmand, Jiayao and Aunt Zhou worked together to make a glutinous rice lotus root. These people ate the sweet glutinous rice lotus root and felt much more rxed.
Desserts can really rx people.
The dozens of girls chattered and soon forgot about the small fright in the morning.
MO Ruyue looked at the girls and remembered that there seemed to be quite a few ponds in the vige nearby. She went to the vige chief and told him that there might be miasma in the ponds and asked him to help spread it to prevent any harm.
In the afternoon, Meng Xun suddenly came to the vige to look for MO
Ruyue.
Whats the matter, Lord Meng?
When Meng Xun saw MO Ruyue, he was a little embarrassed.
Ever since MO Ruyue went to deliver fried chicken to him, his imagination had been running wild. He hadnt seen MO Ruyue for several days. Every time, it was Xue Bangyan who went to check on him and asked if he had any questions. She knew that he might have misunderstood.
Oh, Master Xue said that you like greenhouses. Now that Azurite has arrived, why dont you give me a picture so that I can cover the greenhouses?
The blueprints of the royal princesss manor naturally did not include a ss greenhouse.
However, since the other party had bought so many colored sses and sent them to the princesss manor, they were just passing by.
He could tell that this Princess Ming Yue was quite capable. Although the houses of the high-ranking officials and nobles in the capital now had ss greenhouses, and the windows of many families were all iid with ss, as long as they had money, they could buy ss. However, ordinary people were still reluctant to use it on their houses.
MO Ruyue understood what Meng Xun meant.
Gu Ying must have brought ss over and didnt tell her. Was he trying to give her a surprise?
It was indeed a pleasant surprise.
Well, if youre not in a hurry, sit down and have a cup of tea and eat something first. Ill go draw.
Meng Xun was shocked when he heard MO Ruyue say that she was going to draw!
He had never expected MO Ruyue to know how to draw, and it was even a construction drawing. She was really capable.
Usually, even talented girls would only draw flowers, grass, mountains, and rivers. This was the first time he had heard of a girl who knew how to draw construction drawings.
He wanted to stay and take a look.
Yes, sir.
Qiu Shi, serve a te of glutinous rice lotus root and a pot of tea for Lord Meng.
Yes.
Qiu Shi immediately went to prepare.
Lord Meng, can you tell me how much ss there is?
Eight carriages.
Meng Xun subconsciously thought of how shocked they were when Azurite arrived in the eight carriages.
After saying that, he felt a little strange. This princess bought it herself. How could she not know?
Wait a moment.
MO Ruyue didnt answer Meng Xuns questions and went into the house to draw.
Meng Xun and Qiu Shi brought over a stack of neatly stacked lotus root slices.
The lotus roots eyes were filled with rice grains, and it looked a little delicious.
However, he had never seen such a way of eating.
Sir, please enjoy.
After the autumn fruits subsided, Meng Xun picked up a piece of lotus root. It was sweet and soft in his mouth. It turned out that the lotus root was stuffed with glutinous rice.
After MO Ruyue came out, Meng Xun realized that he had unknowingly finished the entire te of glutinous rice and lotus roots. His face was a little
Here.
Meng Xun took the blueprint and admired MO Ruyue even more. She was indeed extraordinary. I will take my leave.
Alright.
However, when Meng Xun left, he went to the sanatorium and ordered ten fried chicken and ten sauce ducks.
The vige was also bustling with activity. Most of the people working in the fields began to pick up the harvested rice from the fields and bring it home. After putting down their burdens, everyone at the vige entrance drank a bowl of cold mung bean soup, which was especiallyfortable.
This green bean soup was specially prepared by MO Ruyue for the vigers to drink. The green beans were not bought, but grown in the vige.
Now, every household in the vige would send some to MO Ruyue when they were ready to harvest the crops.
MO Ruyue had grown mung beans at home too, so they couldnt finish them all, so they simply cooked mung bean soup.
MO Ruyue sat in the courtyard and ate grapes. She enjoyed watching the busy people outside. She finally didnt have to do farm work anymore.
Qin Qingfei rushed into the courtyard angrily.
Sister-inw!
Qin Qingfei was surprised that her sister-inw was still in the mood to eat grapes. Then, she realized that she had no idea what was happening outside. She took a deep breath.
Sister-inw, let me tell you, the few apprentices in your hospital, the one who was poisoned this morning, the one called Sun something servant, are really shameless!
Did Sun Nu offend you? If theres anything, sit down and eat some grapes.
Look at you sweating.
Qin Qingfei sat down, but she couldnt eat anything.
Hurry up and fire that Servant Sun. She has evil intentions and is simply a vixen.. Dont let our Si Bao and Tang Tang learn bad things!
Chapter 504 - 504: He’s Not Worthy of MO Ruyue
Chapter 504: Hes Not Worthy of MO Ruyue
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Dont be angry. Tell me what happened.
Qin Qingfei had only spoken a few sentences when a small pile of grape skins appeared in front of MO Ruyue.
Tell me, she was poisoned when she went to the pond this morning and was saved by you, right?
MO Ruyue nodded.
She actually brought a bowl of green bean soup to Big Brother and thanked him for saving her life?! Thank him for what?
This is simply ill-intentioned!
Qin Qingfei mmed the table in anger. The grapes in the fruit tter on the table jumped a few times.
MO Ruyue quickly grabbed it.
Fortunately, it did not fall to the ground.
She had nted these grapes herself. They were quite sweet and she liked them very much.
You still want to eat?
Qin Qingfei saw her sister-inws nonchnt look and clearly didnt care at all. She was really a eunuch who would die if the emperor wasnt in a hurry.
Big Brother is handsome and is now ranked second. Isnt it normal for a youngdy to be in love for the first time?
However, it was inappropriate to say that he was her savior.
Sister-inw, arent you worried at all? Arent you angry?
After Big Brother and Sister-inw returned from the capital, they could feel the subtle atmosphere between them. However, until now, the two parties involved had not made things clear, so they were extremely anxious.
Qin Qingfei was furious when she saw how shameless Sun Nu was.
If your brother likes me, he can marry me and make me your sister-inw. Hes not young anymore.
After saying this, MO Ruyue felt that she was a little hypocritical, but what she said was the truth.
Qin Qingfei looked at MO Ruyue, who was still engrossed in eating grapes, and steeled her heart. Sister-inw, dont you know?
It was impossible for Big Brother to fall for such a person. There was already someone in his heart, and that person was
Someone fell into the water!
Someone fell into the water!
As the person outside shouted, the vigers rushed over and headed in that direction.
Dont pull her up!
MO Ruyue and Qin Qingfei heard the cries for help. When they rushed to the riverside, they saw Gu Ying standing on the shore with a furious expression. He was even stopping the others from going into the river to save the person in the water.
What was going on?
Aiya, its Sun Nu. The person in the water is Sun Nu. Quickly pull her up!
A few people from the hospital also came over. Someone had fallen into the water, so they had toe over and save her. Seeing that the person in the water was a friend who had studied medicine together, Sun Nu, who didnt know how to float, they panicked, She actually flopped in the middle of the tide and went out of reach.
Help! Gulp gulp.
MO Ruyue saw that the person who was crying for help in the water looked familiar. It seemed to be Sun Nu from the hospital.
What happened? Lets save her first.
MO Ruyue walked over to Gu Ying and said. No matter how angry he was, he couldnt really drown her, as that would cause a lifewsuit.
Sun Nu was really panic-stricken. She was so scared that her heart was breaking. At this moment, she no longer had any strength and began to sink into the water.
Hurry up and pull her up.
MO Ruyue said to the two guards who came with her.
Let the aunties help out. Dont let that shameless person stick to themter. MO Ruyue stared at Gu Ying in disbelief. Did he say that?
When the two guards heard Gu Yings words, they really stopped in their tracks. They did not dare to go forward anymore. What if they were really implicated by that person?
Previously, they had also heard that this person was trying to curry favor with Gu Ying. They did not have a good impression of her, and now that Gu Ying said so, how could they still go and save her?
None of the aunties in the vige knew how to float. They wanted to save her, but they were powerless. They really did not understand why Gu Ying did not let anyone go down to save her.
In the end, it was still a guard who went down and fished up Sun Nu who had already fainted from drinking.
Go and inform her family to take her back. She is not allowed toe to West River Vige again.
After saying that, Gu Ying went home with a cold face. No one dared to ask him what had happened.
After the time it took to brew a cup of tea, Sun Nu was rescued and brought back to her dormitory by the female students in the hospital.
Seeing that it was a familiar person beside her, Sun Nu cried out loud.
Why did you fall into the river?
It would have been fine if this person didnt ask, but once she did, Sun Nus cries became even more miserable.
The other person who was usually closer to Sun Nu was also trembling in fear and didnt dare to say anything. She was the one who called for help when Sun Nu fell into the water.
Do you know what happened to Liu Hua? Werent you two together before?
I-I dont know.
Dang dang dang!
Suddenly, a gong sounded outside. The female students in the room were shocked. What was going on?
They had been here for quite some time. Only when there was something important in the vige would they ring the gong and gather the vigers to formally discuss something.
A few people were curious and ran out to see what was going on. These people didnt have a good rtionship with Sun Nu, otherwise, they wouldnt have run out to watch the show at this time.
In the end, only two or three people who were usually closest to Sun Nu stayed in the room.
I only have one thing to say to everyone today. There have been many rumors in the vige recently, and they are all directed at me and my family. I want you to know that MO Ruyue is my Qin familys great benefactor.
I dont want to hear any more filthy words about her, or else dont me me for turning my back on you!
After Gu Ying said these two sentences, he walked out of the crowd and ignored them, stunning the group of people.
However, they had also caught some important information. Someone was framing MO Ruyue again, so Gu Ying was furious.
Thinking back to how Gu Ying did not allow anyone to go into the water to save Sun Nu, did it mean that Sun Nu had said something bad about MO Ruyue? That was why Gu Ying kicked her into the water in anger and did not allow anyone to save her?
Gu Ying was furious. If MO Ruyue had not given him a reply, he really wanted to say loudly in front of the entire vige that it was not MO Ruyue who had seduced him. It was him who wanted to seduce MO Ruyue. He was not worthy of MO Ruyue.
There were always some people in the world who couldnt bear to see others live better than them. As long as they lived better than them, they would use all kinds of foulnguage to pollute them.
When he saw MO Ruyue, Gu Ying immediately pulled her home, not allowing her to stay any longer.
What did Sun Nu do to provoke you to be so angry?
MO Ruyue didnt understand the truth. Gu Ying was so angry. From his words, it seemed like she was involved in this.
Gu Ying did not speak. He pulled MO Ruyue through her sleeve and walked faster and faster.
She just wants you to pay attention to her.
What does this have to do with me? You dont have to vent your anger on me now, right?
Mo Ruyue didnt say these two words out loud. She was criticizing him in her heart. Seeing that he was angry now, she wouldnt argue with him openly.
Along the way, Gu Ying heard MO Ruyue talking about Sun, but he kept a straight face and did not say a word.
He pulled MO Ruyue straight into his room and mmed the door shut. The people outside looked at each other, not understanding what they were doing.
They saw that Gu Ying was so aggressive. MO Ruyue must have been forced into the house by him.
Is Uncle going to quarrel with Mother?
Hes going to teach my mother a lesson.. No way
Chapter 505 - 505: Ungrateful Wolf’s Action
Chapter 505: Ungrateful Wolfs Action
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Tang Tang saw Gu Yings aggressive look and instinctively felt that he was going to lose his temper at her mother. She ran towards the closed door. She wanted to save her mother.
Aiyo, Tang Tang, listen to your aunt. Your uncle and your mother have important matters to discuss. They are discussing how to earn money quickly.
Besides, you dont know what your uncle is like. Why would he be fierce to your mother?
It was toote to coax her.
Qin Qingfei and Aunt Zhou tried their best to persuade the two children not to disturb the two people in the house.
The two people in the room stared at each other.
MO Ruyue was dragged in by Gu Ying. She thought that he was going to say something, but he had been looking at her without saying a word.
If youre fine, Ill still pay
Before she could finish her sentence, MO Ruyue was so frightened by Gu Ying that she stopped.
Gu Ying suddenly came forward. The two of them were now looking at each other at a close distance. If Gu Ying leaned forward a little more, he would be able to kiss her. Their breaths were intertwined, and the scene suddenly fell into a subtle atmosphere.
Gu Ying looked at the person in front of him. He was really afraid that he could not help but lean forward and do something. He could not!
He couldnt scare her.
Have you thought about it?
However, MO Ruyue understood what he meant.
Alright.
MO Ruyue realized what she had said, but it was toote to regret it. This man was seducing her with his looks. He was really too despicable!
Thank you for giving me this opportunity.
When Gu Ying finally heard MO Ruyue say that, he was so excited that he pulled MO Ruyue into his arms.
MO Ruyue wanted to struggle, but Gu Yings strength was too strong, so she simply gave up resisting. In fact, this hug did not make her so resistant.
Listening to the rapid thumping sounding from Gu Yings chest, her heart could not help but keep up with the rhythm.
This chest seemed to be very broad, very thick, very warm, and also very safe.
Dont worry. Ill deal with all the noise outside.
He was the one who had let her down first. He should not have let her suffer those things that she should not have.
Then, let me make it clear to you first. My current kindness is only to agree to your pursuit. It doesnt mean that I have to marry you. It still depends on your performance.
MO Ruyue felt that since she had already said it, Gu Ying was actually not bad, so she tried to look around with him.
Im a possessive person. If you decide to be with me, I wont allow you to take a concubine, let alone have a shared room.
You cant even look at others. Can you ept that?
Gu Ying reluctantly let go of MO Ruyue. He held her shoulders with both hands and looked into her eyes.
Dont worry, even maids cant be close to you.
Before this, my eyes were only filled with you. I cant tolerate a second woman.
These words made MO Ruyues heart skip a beat. She dared not look Gu Ying in the eye again.
If we can reach the final step, I cant marry you either.
Upon hearing MO Ruyues words, Gu Yings eyes instantly lost all their luster. He opened his mouth to say something, but MO Ruyue raised her index finger to block his lips.
Listen to me first.
You said you were willing to marry me back then. Did you take it seriously?
You also know that Tang Tang and Si Bao are afraid that I wont want them after I get married. I dont want them to have any trauma in their hearts.
Ill marry you.
Gu Ying immediately expressed his opinion. He was really scared to death just now. He thought that MO Ruyue did not agree to get along with him again.
When Gu Ying was speaking, MO Ruyues hand was still on his lips. Because of the vibration of his voice, MO Ruyues fingers were a little itchy. Her face suddenly turned red and she quickly retracted her hand.
Then why didnt you let Sun Nue up when she fell into the water?
MO Ruyue hurriedly found a topic to divert the subtle atmosphere.
Gu Ying really wanted to grab that finger back, but he knew that going too far was as bad as not being able to catch it, so he held back.
They said you kicked her down.
MO Ruyue knew that her face was hot and she dared not look at Gu Ying with her head lowered.
Its her mouth that isnt clean. I asked her to go into the river to wash it.
This kind of person isnt suitable to stay in your medical school. Let her familye and pick her up. You cant let a rats poop spoil the pot of soup. Alright.
MO Ruyue did not know what to say. Gu Ying was getting closer to her, and their breaths were intertwined. Their body temperatures were rising.
Mother, are you okay?
Tang Tangs worried and clear voice came from outside the door.
Tang Tang thought that her uncle had pulled her mother into the room aggressively. It had been so long, but her mother had note out. She was worried that her mother would be bullied. Her uncle was big and rough, and her mother was so small. She would definitely not be able to defeat her uncle. No, she had to save her mother!
Im okay. Ille out now.
Tang Tang suddenly asked worriedly. The two people in the room hurriedly separated. It was still broad daylight, and the two of them had been in the room for so long. It was indeed not a good influence.
When MO Ruyue came out to see the others in the courtyard, she immediately turned her head to look elsewhere. It was as if she was busy and did not notice her. In fact, they must have been eavesdropping here earlier.
MO Ruyue wasnt shy about whether they had overheard anything. Since she had already made the decision, she wouldnt avoid it.
Even if there were rumors about her, she would not hide and let Gu Ying face it alone.
This was how she was. If she was determined, she would never run away.
Mother, why is your face so red? Are you hot? MO Ruyue was embarrassed by Tang Tangs question.
Yes, the sun is a little big.
But werent you in the room just now? Its not like theres any sunlight in the house.
At this moment, MO Ruyue felt that her daughter was a little too smart and logical.
For a moment, she did not know how to answer.
Is it because Uncle is too fierce that you were scared?
After Tang Tang finished speaking, she turned around and was about to go into the house to fight her uncle.
MO Ruyue didnt care anymore. She let her uncle exin to her and quickly
slipped away.
In the morning, because of Sun Nu, everyones work was dyed for a long time. Now, the entire vige was fighting for time to shred the grain.
MO Ruyue called a manservant to deliver a letter to Sun Nu i s house, asking her parents toe and fetch Sun Nu.
Gu Ying did not need to emphasize that he would not want such an ungrateful person.
Sun Nu was alone in her room while the others went to study. She was a little lost. She did not know if MO Ruyue would punish her or how she would punish her.
She could only hope that the person who asked her to seduce Gu Ying woulde and give her some ideas.
What if MO Ruyue chased her away?
She was learning medical skills here and would be able to finish her apprenticeship in less than two years. In the future, she would also have a status in the family and would not have to go hungry like before. However, it was obvious that what happened today would not be easy. However, she did not know who that person was and how to find him.
She waited anxiously in the house until it was time for dinner. Everyone in the academy had gone to eat dinner when suddenly, a ball of paper was thrown into the back window.
Sun Nu was shocked. She reacted and immediately picked up the note. She looked around and didnt see anyone. There was no one outside the window either. She opened the note and saw that it was indeed given to her by the person who asked her to seduce Gu Ying.
He told her to go to the willow tree by the river at night and discuss with her what to do next..
Chapter 506 - 506: Corpses
Chapter 506: Corpses
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Suddenly, there were footsteps outside the door. Sun Nu hurriedly rolled up the paper and stuffed it under the nket.
Sun Nu, are you feeling better?
Liu Hua was holding a tray with two bowls on it. One was for the herbal soup, and the other was for dinner.
Come, drink the medicine first before eating.
Everyone in the medical school knew that MO Ruyue had already sent someone to call her parents over. It was obvious that she could not stay here any longer.
How did you offend Gu Ying?
You made him so angry.
Sun Nu didnt say anything. She drank the medicine in one go and picked up his bowl to eat.
What should she say?
Was she supposed to say that she failed to seduce Gu Ying and was kicked into the river instead?
Liu Hua looked at Sun Nu who was eating silently. She knew that Sun Nu was unwilling to say anything, so she didnt ask further. After Sun Nu finished eating, she silently carried the bowl out of the room.
Actually, they knew about Sun Nus matter. Moreover, she knew a little more than the others because she had always had a good rtionship with Sun Nu. They were practically inseparable.
Today, Gu Ying, whom she had tipped off to Sun Nu, had returned. Sun Nu then asked her to leave. In the end, not long after she left, Sun Nu fell into the river and did not let anyone save her.
It was most likely that she had done something to anger Gu Ying.
Sigh, she could only say that Sun Nus heart was higher than the sky, but her life was thinner than paper. She could not recognize reality and herself. It was useless for others to say more.
Liu Hua didnt tell Sun Nu that MO Ruyue had asked the servants to invite her parents over, but Sun Nu still heard it. It was those who had entered the room and were usually at odds with her, so they deliberately told her about it in front of the window.
Her house was quite far from here. Even if her parents hurried through the night, they would only reach here at five oclock tomorrow morning at the earliest.
Before that, she had to see that person. Perhaps there was still room for negotiation.
Sun Nu, who was somewhat tormented, finally waited until nightfall.
In the dead of night, she sneaked out of the door and walked to the willow tree by the river.
The moon was brighter tonight. She could clearly see a ck man standing under the willow tree. Sun Nu was a little afraid, but she still went over.
That person turned around and nced at her. His voice was so faint that Sun Nu could hear it.
Follow me.
He didnt dare to say anything to Sun Nu directly. It would be troublesome if someone came out.
At this moment, no matter how afraid Sun Nu was, she had to follow. She had already boarded the pirate ship and could not get off.
The man in ck brought Sun Nu upstream and did not stop until they left the vige.
Tell me what happened to you during the day first.
I did as you said and seduced Gu Ying.
At this point, Sun Nu naturally did not dare to hide anything. She told the man in ck everything that happened during the day.
The man in ck was exasperated.
Why are you so useless?
You cant even do that small thing!
The ck-clothed mans eyes shed with ruthlessness. Sun Nu, who had raised her head, happened to see it and retreated a few steps in fear.
Because of this incident, he had to carry bricks with the team led by the patrol team every day. He was stared at and couldnt do anything himself. He had to sneak around in the middle of the night to see this woman. Just thinking about it made him angry.
My parents will be here at dawn. MO Ruyue wants to chase me away. You must help me. I promise toplete your task this time. I beg
Go to the pharmacy Ill give you five taels first, and another fifty taels after the matter is settled.
When Sun Nu heard that she was to poison the people, she was a little timid.
She did not want to kill anyone.
However, when she saw the silver ingot in the ck-clothed mans hand that was emitting a soft white light, her feet involuntarily moved closer to the ck-clothed man and reached out to take the silver ingot in the ck-clothed mans hand.
Come here, Ill tell you in detail.
The man in ck waved at Sun Nu.
Sun Nu took two more steps toward the man in ck.
The ck-clothed mans eyes suddenly darkened. In a breath, he changed his original thoughts. He could only me this woman for being greedy!
Sun Nu had just stretched out her hand and hadnt touched the silver ingot when she was pulled over by the ck-clothed man and crashed into his arms. She was so frightened that she subconsciously wanted to scream. The ck-clothed man covered her mouth with one hand, and the silver ingot just happened to press against her mouth and hurt.
If you want to die, scream!
If others see you meeting a man in the middle of the night, I dont need to do anything to you. You wont be able to stay here any longer. At that time, your parents wont want you either!
The ck-clothed mans words sessfully stopped Sun Nu, who wanted to call for help, and she was at his mercy.
On a new day, the entire vige gradually woke up with the crowing of the rooster. The people began to busy themselves with their lives again.
The young wives and aunties in the vige took the clothes that their families had changed into yesterday and washed them by the river with baskets or basins.
Aunt Chen, youre so early today!
Yeah, you guys are also early.
Aunt Chen was more diligent. She was the first person to reach the river. She chose a ce where the water level was rtively clear upstream. She took out a piece of clothing and wet it in the river. She then brought it up again and smeared it with soap. She beat it with a mallet for a while before putting it back into the water to wash.
As she swung vigorously, the water rippled. Just as she was washing thest piece of clothing in the basin, a piece of clothing suddenly floated down from a clump of grass upstream due to the ripples of the water.
Who was earlier than me? They actually ran to the top of the river.
Aunt Chen stood up and tiptoed to look upstream, wanting to see who it was.
Whose clothes are floating down?
Aunt Chen said as she reached for the wooden club. However, she felt that something was wrong when she hit it with the wooden club. She hit it twice again and a person actually floated up.
Aunt Chen was so frightened that she threw away her club and almost fell into the river herself. Fortunately, she grabbed onto the grass by the bank and rolled and crawled to the shore.
Help-someones dead-
Themotion here attracted a few women who were washing clothes. They thought that Aunt Chen had encountered a snake, but when they heard her say that someone had died, they were so scared that their scalps went numb. They still ran over to see what was going on.
Ah!
Ah!
Ah!
When the few of them saw the floating corpse, their reactions were exactly the same as when Aunt Chen saw it. They all ran back, rolling and crawling. Two of them did not forget to pull Aunt Chen.
Soon, the vige chief brought people over and fished up the corpse floating in the river. The corpse was already white and stiff. Isnt this the girl who fell into the river yesterday?
Someone recognized the corpse as Sun Nu.
For a moment, the vigers were in a panic. Someone had drowned in the river. In the future, they would not dare toe here to wash clothes.
Wasnt this person fine yesterday? Why did she
Someone wanted to say something but paused after thinking about it. These words could not be said casually.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying had also heard that someone had drowned in the river. They came over to see what had happened and saw that it was Sun Nu. They frowned deeply.
Go report it to the authorities.
No matter what happened, they would definitely report it to the authorities. A guard behind MO Ruyue received the order and went to the county.
MO Ruyue squatted beside Sun Nus corpse and looked at it carefully. Just as she saw the faint strangtion marks on ve Suns neck, she was about to turn her over to take a closer look when she was interrupted by a sudden wail.
My daughter-
An old woman and an old man in their fifties, who were wearing patched coarse clothes, were crying and fighting from afar as they walked toward the river.
When the old woman and the old man saw Sun Nu lying on the ground, they threw themselves onto her and cried their hearts out.
The old vige chief didnt think this would work, but he couldntfort them when they lost their beloved daughter..
Chapter 507 - 507: Clues
Chapter 507: Clues
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Was it you?
It must be you!
We trusted you so much and gave you a good daughter, but in the end, we got a cold corpse. Heavens, this is going to take my lif?
Give me back my daughter, give me back my daughter, Ill fight it out with you~
Old Lady Sun cried as she rushed towards MO Ruyue. Gu Ying shot forward to block MO Ruyue. The other three guards behind MO Ruyue also immediately protected her.
You dont have to cry. Weve already reported it to the authorities. The authorities will investigate how your daughter died, but before that, please dont spout nonsense.
It was you. Yesterday, it was you who pushed my daughter into the water, and today, she is in such a terrible situation. My darling
Old Lady Sun would bite whoever she caught.
MO Ruyue heard Old Lady Sun pointing at Gu Yings nose and scolding him for what had happened yesterday. Didnt Sun Nus parents arrive just now, so how did they know what had happened in the vige yesterday?
NO!
Of course, MO Ruyue wasnt the only one who noticed this. Gu Ying also noticed this.
You were still at home yesterday. I was the one who sent someone to call you over. Were clearly separated by a mountain, but you all saw what happened in the vige yesterday.
Since you saw Gu Ying pushing her into the water yesterday, you should have seen how she died before!
How could Gu Ying let Old Lady Sun get close to him? He didnt need to do anything. The three guards separated Old Lady Sun.
These three guards were tall and strong. No matter how strong Old Lady Sun was, she did not dare to force them, but her daughter could not die in vain.
Old Lady Sun turned back and wailed on her daughters corpse, crying and cursing.
When the students at the hospital heard that something had happened here, they came over and saw that Sun Nu was dead. All of them were so scared that their faces turned pale, and they all huddled together.
MO Ruyue ordered the guards to keep the scene under control so that no one else could touch the deceased.
Sun Nus parents were furious and sad at this moment. How could they listen to them? Their daughter was dead now, and she was lying there and not letting them restrain themselves. What right did they have?
That was their daughter!
Knock them unconscious.
Upon hearing MO Ruyues words, the guard immediately went forward and gave Old Lady Sun and Old Man Sun a hand knife each. The two of them fainted on the ground.
Not long after, County Magistrate Wu came over with his official. He was
clearly riding a horse, but he was sweating as he ran, as if the horse had ridden him here.
He had no choice. MO Ruyues status was different now. She was a princess, and a murder had happened in the vige where the princess lived. If he was not careful, he would lose his head.
Given his rtionship with MO Ruyue, he did not want anything to happen in their vige to implicate him. Moreover, the entire Lianshan County was MO Ruyues fief. If he was not doing well, his subordinates would not be doing well either!
Let the coroner do an autopsy on the spot.
I found a strangtion mark on her neck. Ill let the coroner examine the rest carefully.
Since MO Ruyue had spoken, how could County Magistrate Wu not allow it?
However, there were still some concerns about the body examination. The deceased was the most important. Besides, Sun Nu was a woman. MO Ruyue sent someone home to bring over some unwanted bedsheets and surrounded the scene so that the coroner could examine it with peace of mind.
Not long after, the coroner finished the preliminary autopsy. If she wanted to be more careful, she would have to open her stomach to see if she had been poisoned. This was not easy to do here. She had to take it to the government office.
The coroner tidied up the corpse and asked someone to remove the bedsheet. He told County Magistrate Wu this, and County Magistrate Wu motioned for the coroner to announce the autopsy results in public.
The deceased was defiled when she was alive and strangled to death. She struggled strongly when she died.
As he spoke, the coroner raised Sun Nus hands for others to see.
The victims fingernails had the flesh of the perpetrator.
The deceased was thrown into the water after death and soaked in the water for less than two hours.
Everyone was shocked when they heard the coroners autopsy results.
Who did such a wicked thing to defile a girl, kill her, and throw her into the pond!
In other words, Sun Nu had been dead for at most two hours.
She had soaked in the water for two hours, but the flesh under her fingernails had not been washed away by the water. From this, it could be seen that she had used all her strength to remove a lot of flesh.
ording to this characteristic, the murderers scope was much smaller. The scratches on the murderers body must be very heavy.
Sun Nus body could not be left by the pond like this. The vigers were also in a state of panic.
At this moment, Sun Nus parents had already woken up. The moment they woke up, they immediately started crying again.
Seeing that the county magistrate had actuallye over, they knelt down in front of County Magistrate Wu.
Master, you must help our daughter
This official will definitely find out the murderer and give justice to the deceased. You guys go home first. This matter will be difficult for a while.
It was also a tragic thing for County Magistrate Wu to send off Sun Nus parents.
Sun Nus parents immediately became anxious when they saw County Magistrate Wus reaction. The two of them pointed at Gu Ying anxiously.
Its him, its him! Hes the murderer!
Please be careful with your words.
We cant take action just because you said so. We have to get evidence step by step before we could arrest someone and determine the culprit.
However, no matter what County Magistrate Wu said, Sun Nus parents insisted that the murderer was Gu Ying.
Im willing to let the county magistrate examine myself.
Since the victims fingernails had the criminals flesh, then he would have to check if there are any scratches on my body.
Gu Ying was very frank in front of everyone. He was very angry. He had just gotten along with MO Ruyue, and now he had encountered such a troublesome matter.
The murderer had better not fall into his hands, otherwise
The other old men in the vige felt that Gu Yings words made sense, so they all nodded and expressed their willingness to cooperate with County Magistrate Wu to check his body.
He didnt want to be mistaken as the murderer.
There was definitely no murderer in the vige.
They were all men, so when they were checking, they even let Sun Nus tather personally watch from the side.
How could it not be him?
But the truth was the truth.
Gu Ying and County Magistrate Wu had the same thoughts. They had to catch the murderer. This was MO Ruyues territory. She had only been a princess for a short time and was already facing such a situation. If she did not handle it well, it was inevitable that someone would make a fuss about it.
This criminal had killed Sun Nu in order to frame them. It was obvious that he was targeting them. If he was targeting them, then so be it. It was unforgivable to joke around with human lives.
This was simply intolerable!
If he was caught, he had to be executed on the spot.
County Magistrate Wu sent out two teams of officers to search the other viges. He himself led a few other officers to search the house where Sun Nu lived, hoping to find any clues.
This investigation really allowed him to find some clues. In Sun Nus nket, he found a ball of paper. On the ball of paper, the words Meet me under the willow tree at midnight were written.
This was a huge breakthrough. He just needed to find the person who wrote this paper ball.
The girls in the medical school were all interrogated about the people or things that Sun Nu hade into contact with.
At the same time, Sun Nus parents were also under strict supervision. These two people were also very suspicious.
On the surface, they were afraid that they would do something stupid because of the loss of their beloved daughter, but in reality, they were under supervision.
These two people had just arrived at West River Vige this morning, but they knew everything that had happened in West River Vige the day before. This was very strange.
However, the old couple insisted that Gu Ying was the murderer and did not say anything else.
If they were asked how they knew what happened in the vige yesterday, they would say that they heard it from others..
Chapter 508 - 508: There’s a Snake Behind You
Chapter 508: Theres a Snake Behind You
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The vigers were terrified. Sun Nu had been raped and killed. How vicious was the murderer?
Sun Nus parents were still righteously iming that the murderer was Gu Ying. Yesterdays incident has already spread like wildfire. Everyone knows about it.
Old Lady Sun pointed at Gu Ying.
Only he had a conflict with my daughter yesterday. He must have had ulterior motives towards my daughter and finally became angry out of humiliation!
Master Wu, you cant let this murderer off just like that!
My poor daughter
Old Lady Sun said with foam at the corner of her mouth. She had a stern expression and spoke without thinking.
Old Lady Sun didnt know if the two idioms she used were correct. She only knew that she had to insist that Gu Ying was the murderer.
As she spoke, she pulled her hand back to cover her chest. In fact, she was taking the opportunity to touch the silver ingot in her arms.
MO Ruyue could not stand it anymore. She could not let this old woman nder Gu Ying.
Are you saying that Gu Ying plotted against your daughter?
What else could it be?
He must have seen that my daughter is beautiful. He is a scum. In the day, my daughter expressed her feelings to him, but he pretended to be a gentleman.
At night, he
Sob, sob, sob My poor daughter, Father and Mother will definitely help you find the murderer!
A life for a life!
Bah! Youre all the same!
MO Ruyue was toozy to talk to this crazy woman.
County Magistrate Wu, are you going to beat her dozens of times?
They ndered good people and contradicted bengong.
Gu Ying was the second-in-line chosen by the Emperor, and Gu Ying had already proven his innocence. Thismoner could not nder him like this.
How could she despise this Queen!
Anyone who disrespects me will be beaten with a stick!
Its the princess!
County Magistrate Wu nodded and waved his hand behind him. Two bailiffs came forward with sticks.
After suppressing Sun Nus parents, he began to beat them with his cane.
Ah!
Ah!
He did not give the two of them any chance to argue.
County Magistrate Wu finally understood that such a person had to be punished with lightning methods.
Princess Ming Yue, I will take them down first.
County Magistrate Wu was also a shrewd person. Although MO Ruyue had be a princess, not everyone knew about it. Some people did owe her.
If you have any questions, just ask me if I can help.
Thank you, Princess Ming Yue!
MO Ruyue nodded.
No one present had expected this scene. Even Sun Nus parents had not expected that their daughter would die and the murdered would not be caught. They would also be beaten up.
However, when they heard County Magistrate Wu address MO Ruyue as Princess, they thought they had heard wrongly.
However, County Magistrate Wu was the county magistrate of Lianshan County. He would not lie, nor would he bow down to amoner. There was only one possibility. Was MO Ruyue really a princess?!
But How How was this possible?
At this moment, Sun Nus parents had been beaten to the point where they could barely breathe. They were hanging on to theirst breath and did not dare to say anything more. They allowed the bailiff to take them away, along with Sun Nus corpse.
After they left, the vige buzzed like a hive of bees.
As for who the murderer was, no one in the vige believed that it was Gu Ying.
Putting everything else aside, based on Gu Yings own conditions, he could marry any girl he wanted. How could he do such a stupid thing? Moreover, that Sun Nu was just average looking.
Moreover, Gu Ying had already proven his innocence.
The vige was still in a state of panic. Those who had daughters and daughters-inw at home did not dare to go out alone. They insisted on going out. They all went out in groups of two or three or apanied by their parents.
Alright, everyone, dont just stand here. Do what you need to do.
He hadnt eaten anything in the morning, and the old vige chief was hungry. He persuaded everyone to go home first, but when he thought of Sun Nus dead state, he couldnt eat anymore.
Gu Ying told MO Ruyue and the others to be careful at home. He also asked a few guards to look after the house. He also told the few teenagers at home not to go out to look after the house for the next two days. He rode his horse to town.
It was obvious that this was targeted at him or MO Ruyue, and their enemies could be counted on one hand.
Gu Ying was prepared to personally ask Sun Nus parents. The two of them were very problematic, and he could only find a breakthrough from them.
As for the bailiffs who went door-to-door to interrogate them, Gu Ying did not have much hope.
He was quite familiar with the people who had recentlye to the capital. This was also thanks to the bodyguard agency that MO Ruyue had asked him to set up. He received news from all over the world every day.
It just so happened that the bodyguard agency was the most familiar with the flow of people.
He rode his horse at full speed towards the town. When he reached the entrance of his Civil and Martial Arts College, he met County Magistrate Wu and his group. In front of him was MO Ruyues Princess Manor.
At this moment, Meng Xun was talking about something at the entrance of the princesss manor with his men. When he saw County Magistrate Wuing over with a group of people, he took a few more nces and saw Gu Ying.
Gu Ying, what are you doing?
Meng Xun saw Gu Ying following behind them and thought that they must havee together. As for County Magistrate Wu, he did not know him, but this person was wearing the official uniform of a county magistrate. He cupped his hands at County Magistrate Wu, and County Magistrate Wu quickly returned the gesture.
There was a murder in the vige.
Gu Ying exined to Meng Xun. When he suddenly realized that someone behind him had heard him talk about the murder case, he panicked and Gu Ying happened to see him.
When he looked carefully again, that person had no expression. Gu Ying also pretended that nothing had happened. He walked to Sun Nus body and lifted the cloth covering her face.
This girl was murdered. If Lord Meng hears any clues, please let me know.
Definitely.
Gu Ying looked at the strange person from before. As expected, although that person hid it well, his pupils could not hide from his eyes.
The others also had different expressions, but none of them were as nervous as he was. He was a little too nervous, and it was not like a normal persons normal behavior when they saw a corpse.
If the Liu family wanted to do something to them back then, the best ce to nt people was Meng Xuns ce.
Since there was suspicion, Gu Ying could not just stand there foolishly or go to verify anything. He directly went forward and grabbed the person. The man panicked and wanted to fight back, but he held back.
What does this young master want to do?
I see a snake behind you.
Gu Ying said as he grabbed the mans cor and pulled him down. At the same time, the man was so frightened that he fought back.
Gu Ying stared at him, afraid that he would not fight back.
That person was originally a spy waiting for an opportunity to move, so how could he be Gu Yings match? After a few rounds, Gu Ying subdued him, and at the same time, Gu Ying took off that persons shirt.
Whats going on?
Meng Xun was puzzled when he saw his men being beaten up by Gu Ying.
However, that persons reaction puzzled him. When did he have such a capable person under him?
However, Gu Ying frowned deeply. There were no wounds on this person.
Young Master, what are you doing?
Seeing Gu Yings puzzled and incredulous expression, the man heaved a sigh of relief.
Im sorry. I saw that you were strong and muscr like a martial artist, so I wanted to test your skills.
Ive opened the Civil and Martial Arts Institute and am currently recruiting apprentices from all over the ce.
Meng Xuns expression darkened when he saw Gu Ying trying to poach him in front of him. However, he knew that Gu Ying was not telling the truth.
He looked at the corpse covered by the white cloth again. Could it be that Gu Ying suspected that there was something wrong with the person inside?
Thinking of this, Meng Xun was even more unhappy. However, that persons reaction and his skills were indeed problematic..
Chapter 509 - 509: Clear the Mountain
Chapter 509: Clear the Mountain
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gu Ying, youre starting to poach people in front of me.
Meng Xun turned to the man and said, Since Gu Ying has spoken, why dont you have a good spar with him? As long as you can tie with him, I wont let him go no matter what.
That person thought that Meng Xun would argue with Gu Ying, but he didnt expect him to say this.
Im not his match.
You mean you want to go to his Civil and Military Academy?
Meng Xun frowned as he looked at that person. After thinking for a long time, he still did not know the name of this person. It seemed that he had juste under him before he came.
No, I dont want to go.
If you dont want toe, then spar with me. Let me have my fill. I havent sparred with anyone in a long time.
As Gu Ying spoke, he didnt wait for that person to reply. He directly swung his fist at him and swept his leg at the same time.
That person was no match for Gu Ying. Gu Ying knocked him down, lifted him up, and knocked him down again. When he was not paying attention, Gu Ying took advantage of the momentum and pulled. His pants were torn apart.
The moment the trouser leg was torn, the persons face revealed a look of panic. At the same time, Gu Ying also saw the scratch marks on his leg.
Without hesitation, he immediately took it down and dislocated his chin to prevent this person from being a poison sac in the teeth of a death warrior.
The victims fingernails are full of skin from the murderer. I want to take this person away for interrogation.
Gu Ying exined to Meng Xun the reason for his actions.
What else could Meng Xun say? Of course, he allowed Gu Ying and the others to take that person away. Otherwise, would he be able to prove that he was an aplice?
He was only here to build the princess residence for Princess Ming Yue.
Lord, please interrogate him strictly. As long as I can help, just say the word.
Meng Xun cupped his hands at County Magistrate Wu.
Then Ill have to trouble Lord Meng.
Where is his family?
What kind of people are they?
Who does he often interact with?
Gu Ying did not stand on ceremony with Meng Xun at all. He asked a lot of questions in case Meng Xun had aplices.
How could Meng Xun not know what he meant? He told him everything he knew and even asked everyone here, as well as a few people who were usually close to him.
After asking around, there were no problems. Only this person had a problem. Gu Ying knew that even if there were aplices here, he would not be able to get anything out of them. He dislocated the mans arm and threw him to the bailiffs. He told Magistrate Wu that he would go back to the vige first.
County Magistrate Wu gestured for the bailiffs to bring the man back to the county office. Not long after he arrived, Gu Ying also arrived.
Sir, please quickly investigate the case.
When Gu Ying arrived, he asked County Magistrate Wu to start the trial.
Gu Ying sprinkled some powder on the face of the person whose arm and chin had been dislocated by him, and used a strong wind to blow it into his mouth.
This was the powder he had just gotten when he returned home. MO Ruyue had said that this was the only packet of Truth Potion she had left.
Gu Ying reattached the mans chin with a snap.
What happened next was simple. The person answered whatever he asked.
As expected, it was the Liu family who had caused trouble again. Moreover, he hade to deal with MO Ruyue, to make them look bad, and even to silence her. Because MO Ruyues family had guards and Qi Ji guards, he could not bear to do it, so he had shifted the target to Gu Ying.
Gu Ying regretted not burning the Liu family down.
County Magistrate Wu was so shocked that his mouth was wide open.
After interrogating this person, because he implicated the Empress, County Magistrate Wu did not have the right to convict him directly. This person had to be sent to Shuntian Prefecture under the eyes of the Emperor.
As for Sun Nus parents, after that person recruited them, they took the initiative to say that they had been bribed by him and begged for mercy. They could be spared the death penalty, but they could not escape the punishment. They were given dozens of strokes and sent to prison, waiting for their release after serving their sentence.
Gu Ying, what kind of powder is this? Why is it so magical?
County Magistrate Wu was really curious. If he had this powder, would he still have to worry about not being able to catch the criminal?
I got this by chance. I only have thisst bit left, and now Ive used it up.
This kind of thing definitely could not be widely circted in the market. If it fell into the hands of someone with ill intentions, it would be a huge disaster.
Oh, thats a pity.
County Magistrate Wu really felt that it was a pity. Since it was gone, he did not dwell on it.
Tomorrow morning, I will send someone to escort this person to Shuntian Prefecture.
Yes, it just so happens that I have something to do in the capital. Lets go together tomorrow. Ill go back first.
Alright.
The Liu family was like poisonous flies again and again. Gu Ying wanted to go to the capital and decided to use lightning methods to capture the Liu family in one fell swoop.
In addition, he was originally going to make a trip there. His ssmates in the capital said that they had epted many students who wanted toe to school for him.
He had already sent a letter asking him to meet them again. If he really became a mountain chief in the future, he definitely wouldnt have time to go.
The first thing he did when he got home was to look for MO Ruyue.
Can you make more of that truth powder?
The person who killed Sun Nu was sent by the Liu family.
Im preparing to make a trip to the capital.
Even without Gu Ying saying anything, MO Ruyue knew what he wanted the truth powder for.
Just you wait, Ill get it right away.
MO Ruyue was busy in the pharmacy for the entire afternoon, preparing and grinding herbs. Tang Tang and Si Bao apanied her for the entire afternoon, and they even helped her out from time to time.
Mother, what is this powder for?
Tang Tang was very interested in the medicine that MO Ruyue had spent the entire afternoon concocting.
This thing is very important. Its our familys secret that cant be revealed in front of others. We cant let anyone know, or else our family will definitely be in trouble.
The two children nodded seriously, indicating that they remembered.
MO Ruyue kept two packets for herself and two packets for Gu Ying.
The next morning, Gu Ying brought the two packets of medicinal powder and went to the capital again.
When the vigers learned that the murderer who harmed Sun Nu had been found, they cheered.
However, after all, a person had been murdered in the vige. Everyone was still a little afraid these few days. Once it was dark, they hurried home.
MO Ruyue was the only one who could study her medicinal cuisine as if nothing had happened.
She was also very persistent about her herbal cuisine shop. She had already opened and closed it twice before. This was the third time. They said that things would not happen more than three times. This time, it would definitely seed.
The medicinal cuisine shop had to attract big customers who were willing to spend money to make money and be famous.
MO Ruyue took out a map of the area around Reliance Town.
After a closer look, she realized that their vige was only a turn away from Lianshan County. If they could get through the mountain, it would only take them half an hour to walk to their vige.
If you want to be rich, build a road first!
Since MO Ruyue could not repair the road herself, she had to ask County Magistrate Wu for help.
County Magistrate Wu had always wanted MO Ruyue to build the princesss manor in Lianshan County. However, MO Ruyue had chosen to build the princesss manor in West River Vige. County Magistrate Wu felt very regretful at that time.
Now, he had to find a way to dig through the mountain. In this way, Lianshan
County would be very close to her. No matter what happened, County
Magistrate Wu would be able to arrive in time. He should be very willing.
It was just that it would be quite difficult to break through this mountain in this era. In the 25th century, explosives could still be used to blow up mountains. In this era, explosives did not exist.
Although she knew how to do it, she did not dare to do it. If she did it, she felt that the world would be in chaos.
It gave some ambitious people hope and threatened her to take it to the border. She had to give it to them even if she did not want to.
However, she did not want to see that kind of situation. How many people would be homeless then?
No, this kind of thing must not appear here.
How much manpower and money would it take to dig it by hand?
This was not worth it, but this road had to be repaired. He had to think of a good way..
Chapter 510 - 510: Harder Than Making Her Eat Poison
Chapter 510: Harder Than Making Her Eat Poison
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
One person was the short end of the stick, while two people were the long end. MO Ruyue still went to look for County Magistrate Wu.
County Magistrate Wus eyes widened when he heard that MO Ruyue wanted to dig through the mountain.
How big was this project, and how long would it take toplete?
Now that MO Ruyue was the owner of Lianshan County, she had to pay the taxes every year. She didnt even know if the remaining money would be enough to open up the mountain.
MO Ruyue also knew that she couldnt spend her money recklessly. Besides, the money hadnt reached her hands yet. Even if she had money, she couldnt spend it all on the road connecting Lianshan County and West River Vige.
For a moment, the two of them could not think of a good solution. MO Ruyue decided not to think about it for now. The more urgent this matter was, the more she could not think of a solution. How has Sister-inw been recently?
Ill go see her.
Good, good, good. Then I will bring the princess over.
County Magistrate Wu stood up with MO Ruyue and was about to lead the way.
No need. Its not my first timeing to your house. You have a lot of things to do. I wont get lost myself.
MO Ruyue waved at County Magistrate Wu, then led Granny Rong and Chun Hua to the back government office.
Princess, this is not in line with the rules. Logically speaking, it should be the county magistrates wife who came to visit you.
Granny Rong felt that her princess was a princess after all, and she was also personally appointed by the Emperor. Moreover, she was very favored. How could the princess lower her status to meet a county magistrates wife?
However, she only dared to think about this in her heart. She just couldnt help but remind her a little.
The moment she said that, she was afraid. If the princess was unhappy, her mouth would be so bad!
Granny Rong really wanted to p herself.
MO Ruyue also knew that Granny Rong was a naggy person. In fact, everything she said and thought was for her own good.
You dont know that when I wasnt a princess, this county magistrates wife treated me quite well.
No matter when or if his identity changed, he would never forget his roots. Im a princess now, so I can put on airs and make people take the initiative to see me.
I didnt jinx it.
Granny Rong, look up at the cloud in the sky. The wind and clouds are unpredictable. Its hard to say if the cloud in the next moment will still be the one were looking at now.
MO Ruyue had been with Granny Rong for a long time and had learned to beat around the bush.
Granny Rong naturally understood what MO Ruyue meant. She was a princess now, and MO Ruyue had to put on airs. What if she wasnt a princess one day?
It wasnt impossible!
Although this possibility was unimaginable.
Princess is right, this old servant is stupid.
Chun Hua looked at Granny Rong with a stifled smile.
Granny Rong had been defeated repeatedly by the princess.
Who was their princess?
If she didnt have the ability, would she be able to make the emperor confer her the title of Princess Ming Yue?
There were many capable girls in the world, but up until now, there was no one with a different surname who was still a vige girl. To make an exception and be personally conferred the title of princess by the emperor, until now, it was only their princess!
When she arrived at the back of the yamen, MO Ruyue noticed a gardener digging a hole in the rockery in the flowerbed. She wondered what he was digging.
When the county magistrates wifes servant girl saw MO Ruyue, she came over to greet MO Ruyue with great respect.
This servant greets Princess Ming Yue.
Get up quickly. It hasnt been long since west met, and youre already estranged from me.
This servant girl had a good rtionship with MO Ruyue.
The servant girl saw that MO Ruyue did not use her power to oppress others, nor did she put on airs after she became a princess. She heaved a sigh of relief in her heart. It was still the same Doctor Mo.
This servant will go and call Madam for you.
Madam had fallen into a deep sleep and had yet to wake up. She did not know that Princess hade.
MO Ruyue nodded and sat down.
The maidservant had already served tea and snacks. MO Ruyue picked up the teacup and took a sip.
From her angle, the gardener in the garden was digging out the fake mountain as if he was digging out some treasure.
MO Ruyue mmed her teacup on the table and stood up.
I have an idea!
This concubine didnt know that Princess Ming Yue had arrived, please forgive me.
The county magistrates wife came out to apologize to MO Ruyue.
Sister-inw, dont treat me as an outsider. Dont you know what kind of person I am?
This trip to the capital was just a stroke of good luck, to have caught the Imperial Concubines eye.
When you see me in the future, just treat me as the MO Ruyue who knows medicine. Dont be so polite.
You should just call me sister.
Seeing the sincerity on MO Ruyues face, the County Magistrates wife liked MO Ruyue even more. After all, her status had risen, and now it was her turn to climb up to MO Ruyue.
She was more than happy that he was willing to get along with her like before.
Sister, what did you say just now?
Oh, I was just about to go find the county magistrate.
The husband and wife would definitely talk about this in private. She did not want to hide it from the county magistrates wife. Besides, this was not a secret.
Why dont you go with me?
Since she was already invited, the county magistrates wife could not refuse to go. The two of them went to the front office to look for County Magistrate Wu.
County Magistrate Wu saw that MO Ruyue hade over again and hurriedly stood up to let MO Ruyue sit.
MO Ruyue didnt sit on his main seat. Instead, she asked him for a pen washi and sat beside him. While writing and drawing, she told County Magistrate Wu and his wife about her idea.
She had thought of a way, and all she needed was County Magistrate Wus cooperation.
County Magistrate Wu was shocked by MO Ruyues idea!
In his opinion, only an immortal could think of such a peerless method. Anyway, he would never be able to think of it in his lifetime.
Princess, dont worry. This lowly official will do it properly for you.
Ill find someone to arrange it.
Then Ill have to trouble you, County Magistrate.
I dont dare, I dont dare. This is what I should do.
MO Ruyue was toozy to be polite with him anymore. Now that she had finished her important task, she was in a good mood. She chatted with the county magistrates wife for a while and checked her pulse before leaving the yamen.
After leaving the county office, MO Ruyue went to the county to buy a lot of things to bring home for the children.
It had be a habit for her to bring some things home for the children.
Whether it was in the shop or in the stall, she would take a look and return the money when it was time to bargain.
Granny Rong had a conflicted look on her face the entire way. Finally, she couldnt help but start to reason with MO Ruyue when she got into the carriage.
Princess, your status is noble. Bargaining is really
If someone with ulterior motives sees it, they will definitely gossip. Next time, let this old servant bargain with others. Or let Chun Hua and the others do it, otherwise what do you want the servants for?
The servants follow you all day long like
Granny Rong finally stifled the words walking dead. Since when did she think of such a crude term?!
It was too terrifying!
These servants are like marites. This servants duty is to serve you. If you have anything to do, just instruct these servants.
Granny Rong babbled on and on the whole way, and she was very careful. She wanted to hold it in but couldnt help it. She couldnt change her bad habit of talking high.
MO Ruyue was also impressed by her. She was afraid that she would get angry, but she couldnt help but say it. She really couldnt figure it out.
Looking at Granny Rongs appearance, she probably nagged like this for most of her life. It was probably harder to make her change than to make her eat poison.
However, MO Ruyue really did not want to listen to her nagging anymore. She finally returned to the vige!
MO Ruyues eyes lit up again when she saw the chattering apprentices.
Its better to be alone than to be together!
Princess, what did you say?
MO Ruyue muttered to herself, but Granny Rong did not hear her clearly. She thought that she was instructing MO Ruyue to do something..
Chapter 511 - 511: A Princess Is A Princess
Chapter 511: A Princess Is A Princess
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Granny Rong, look at that hospital. Gu Ying built it especially for me. Ever since I got this hospital, Ive recruited many apprentices. I want to teach them all my medical skills so that I can benefit the people of the world.
But look at these girls. Their manners are far worse than mine. Do I need to teach them?
If word got out, they were taught by me. Although they were only my in-name disciples, they still had to call me madam.
Granny Rong, why dont you teach them the rules for me? Two hours a day.
Usually, she would only teach those people medical skills for four hours. In the remaining time, those girls would not be able to study hard. They would justugh and chat or do other things, or most of them would be ying.
Granny Rong took a closer look. Indeed, what these people had done outside had nothing to do with the princess. However, they were still the princess disciples in name. They could not be allowed to go outside and ruin the princess reputation!
Suddenly, Granny Rong felt that her mission was difficult, but she was not afraid. Her strength was to teach people rules. This was her specialty!
Yes, this old servant will not fail you!
Alright, alright, alright. Ill wait for your good news then.
Granny Rong epted the order and walked toward the group of girls in the hospital with her head held high and her chest puffed out.
MO Ruyue sent Granny Rong off with her eyes. Seeing that Granny Rong had been admitted to the hospital, her body and mind felt much better. She would be able to rx for quite some time now.
The girls in the hospital still did not know what kind of situation they were going to face.
As the sun set, the crescent moon rose and nted to the west like a small boat. Another day passed.
In the past, people would go to the river to wash clothes at the beginning of the morning (5 a.m.) or the middle of the morning (6 a.m.). Now, the earliest people to appear were also at the end of the morning (7 a.m.). They even went to wash clothes in groups of two or three. No one wanted to be the first to fight for a spot. Everyone squatted down and washed together.
This was the result of the vige chief seeing that the vigers were in a panic and went to find a god to perform a ritual by the river. Otherwise, no one in the vige woulde to the river to wash clothes.
It was about seven oclock in the morning, and everyone in the vige hade to wash their clothes. Everyone washed quickly and rushed back. However, they realized that there were people in the vige again, and they seemed to be from the government.
The two bailiffs brought six people in their thirties or forties into the vige. They were dressed in brocade clothes and looked like nobles.
Milords, Ill go back first.
The two bailiffs said to the two leaders of the six people. The six people also cupped their hands and bid farewell to the bailiffs.
One of the two leaders happened to see Aunt Chen.
Sister-inw, I heard that theres a well-built inn in your vige. Can people stay here now?
Aunt Chen was carrying the washed clothes home when she was stopped by them.
I dont know about this yet. You cane with me. Ill find the right person for you.
By the way, what are you guys here for?
Aunt Chen did not believe that this person had brought many people here just to stay in the inn in the vige.
We are here to survey the terrain of the mountain range and look for a type of ore.
Aunt Chen frowned deeply when she heard what they said.
The entire Lianshan County now belonged to MO Ruyue. It didnt make sense for these people toe here and casually look at MO Ruyues things.
Aunt Chen didnt say anything. She wanted to inform MO Ruyue first, but those people were following her, so she hastened her pace.
When they arrived at MO Ruyues house, they said to the two, You guys wait here first. Ill go in and get someone for you.
The two of them naturally agreed.
Aunt Chen directly ced the basin of clothes at MO Ruyues door and jogged into the house.
The gatekeeper led Aunt Chen to the second gate. Chrysanthemum went to inform Chun Hua, who then asked MO Ruyue for instructions. Only then did Aunt Chen see MO Ruyue.
It was Aunt Chens first time seeing such a scene. Oh my god, being a princess was really different. Why did she have to go through so many procedures just to see her?
Now wasnt the time toment about this.
Princess, early in the morning, a few people dressed like humans came to this vige. They said they were here to survey the terrain of some mountain range. Are they trying to snatch your territory or something?
Do you know?
Aunt Chen and a few others had a good rtionship with MO Ruyue from the beginning. After learning that MO Ruyue was a princess, they called her Princess. They were not willing to call her doctor or her name. A princess was a princess.
Speaking of which, there was a princess in West River Vige. It was a matter of pride to say it out loud, so she refused to change her mind.
MO Ruyue did not need to ask to know who they were. Wasnt this all arranged by her? She didnt expect them toe so early.
She had thought that County Magistrate Wu would need a few more days to find those people.
Oh, I know about this. Although I am a princess now and Lianshan County is my fief, I have to measure it often. Its okay. The title deed is on record.
Thank you, Aunt Chen. Dont worry.
Aunt Chen was relieved after hearing MO Ruyues exnation.
Then Ill go home and hang my clothes. Oh right, those two said they wanted to stay in your inn.
Alright, Aunt Chen, take care.
The inn in the vige had not beenpleted yet, so MO Ruyue directly brought those people to Gu Yings Civil and Military Academy and gave them two rooms to stay in.
After she was done, she hurried back to the vige because the second batch of female doctors from the pce had arrived. The first batch of female doctors had to go back.
The first batch of pce maids were reluctant to part with MO Ruyue. MO Ruyue was a princess who did not put on airs. She treated them well, and the mountains, rivers, and food here were all good. Of course, they did not forget what they needed to learn. They really did not want to return to the capital, but it was impossible not to go back.
When they left, they all bid farewell to MO Ruyue.
Take care on the road. If you have time in the future, you cane over and y.
The female doctors were very touched, and in the end, they followed the guards back.
More than a dozen new female doctors moved into the rooms that the previous batch of female doctors had stayed in. It was not as chaotic as the first time.
MO Ruyue had taken in more than twenty youngdies as wives. When the second batch of medical maids arrived, the sense of urgency became even greater.
This was because the second batch of pce maids were not as giggling as the first batch. They did not mingle with them and were more obedient.
What they didnt know was that when these pce maids saw Granny Rong teaching them the rules, they wouldntugh andugh.
Nanny Rong was famous for teaching rules in the pce.
However, when they saw Granny Yan, their eyes widened even more.
This Granny Yan was even stricter than Granny Bi.
It was already benevolent of the princess to let Granny Rong teach the apprentices the rules.
These pce maids did not know about it, but two of them knew Granny Rong and Granny Yan and knew what kind of people they were. They did not expect that Empress Dowager would send these two grannies to serve MO Ruyue.
If two people knew, then everyone else would also know. Everyone was extremely well-behaved, afraid that they would be caught by the two nannies if they did something wrong..
Chapter 512 - 512: Great News
Chapter 512: Great News
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue was not in the mood to care about them. She only taught them medical skills every day. Right now, she was most concerned about opening the mountain.
She wondered how the preparations were going.
After dinner, she strolled toward the foot of the mountain on the vige road.
Granny Rong went to teach them the rules, and Granny Yan automatically went to MO Ruyues side.
Granny Yan was slightly better off with MO Ruyue. At least Granny Yan was not as long-winded as Granny Rong. Princess, do you want to take a carriage?
Or a pnquin?
Chun Hua did not know where MO Ruyue was going, so she probed.
No need. Ill just walk more to digest my food.
If you have something to do, go ahead. You dont have to follow.
However, none of these people listened to MO Ruyue. They still braced themselves and followed.
Their duty was to serve MO Ruyue and ensure her safety.
MO Ruyue was toozy to care about him.
Before they left the vige, they were stopped by Aunt Chen.
Where did Aunt Chene from?
Aiya, princess, I was just about to look for you.
Its those few people in luxurious clothes who said they were here to measure thend and mountains. I dont think theyre measuring at all. Why are they digging and knocking at the foot of the mountain with shovels and pickaxes?
Dont tell me youre up to something?
MO Ruyue stared at Aunt Chen with her eyes wide open. She never thought that
Aunt Chen would be the first to notice that something was wrong with those people.
Its fine, its fine. Theyre looking for something useful.
MO Ruyue vaguely exined to Aunt Chen. She couldnt say it now, nor could she not.
When Aunt Chen heard that MO Ruyue knew that she was worrying for nothing, she went home with a peace of mind.
However, those people knocked from morning to night every day. If it wasnt this mountain, they would knock and dig. Sometimes, it waste at night, but they would still knock and dig withnterns. After digging for three to four days, all the nearby viges finally knew.
The old vige chief came to look for MO Ruyue.
That princess, I was wondering what those people were digging quietly for.
Is this really okay?
The old vige chief had the same thoughts as Aunt Chen. The entire Lianshan County belonged to MO Ruyue now. If these people were to cause trouble on
MO Ruyues territory, they would be causing trouble on the head of the dragon.
The old vige chief was extremely worried, so he decided to ask.
MO Ruyue couldnt bear to see the old Vige Chief so anxious.
Uncle, does everyone know now?
Exactly!
Those people had been knocking and digging since the first day they came. They had already run through the nearby mountains. It was difficult for them not to know!
Not only did our vige know, but the neighboring viges also knew.
The old vige chief also knew that a few people from other viges were also digging blindly to see if there was anything.
The vige chief had never told MO Ruyue about these things before. Now, as long as MO Ruyue showed any dissatisfaction, he would definitely gather the vigers to chase those people away.
Uncle, dont be anxious. Those people wille to look for meter. At that time, well listen to what theyre up to.
Why dont you have lunch at my ce? They mighte in a while, so I dont have to ask someone to call you again.
Oh right, I still have something to talk to you about.
The old vige chief had originally said that he wanted to go home, but when he heard that she still had something to discuss with him, he sat down again.
Jiayao was still busy in the kitchen with a few servant girls. MO Ruyue asked the servant girls to bring some refreshments over first.
If you need anything from me, just say it. Dont be polite with me.
The old vige chief was still an impatient person. Although he was sometimes a little slow when he spoke, he was an impatient person in his heart.
Uncle, you know that Gu Ying wants to open a civil and military college. He can be a teacher in the martial arts college, but he has to recruit a teacher in the literature college.
I remember that theres a big brother in Uncles family who teaches private schools in town. I just thought that we might as well invite our family members instead of outsiders. If Big Brother cane back, itll be more convenient for you and Aunt in the future, right?
The old vige chief was getting older, although his body was still quite strong and he was usually busy.
However, MO Ruyue had seen it several times. The old vige chief was especially envious of other families that had aplete family.
His son was out there to make a living, but now that there was a school in the vige, if he was willing toe back, wouldnt the family be reunited? The old vige chief and his wife would definitely be happy.
The old vige chiefs eyes lit up. He knew what MO Ruyue meant.
This, this, this, thats great. But I have to ask him if he cane back. You know, hes been there for so many years.
The old vige chief was so excited that he was rubbing his hands together.
MO Ruyue smiled. I know. Thats why I thought of asking Uncle first. You should ask Big Brother first. It would be best if hes willing toe back.
This was great news for the old vige chief. He reckoned that his son would be very willing.
Ren Gu Ying was ranked second. The academy opened by the second ce was not much better than the school opened by the town.
In the past two years, the vige had developed much better than before. Now that there was a princess in the vige, it would definitely be better in the future. Her son would definitely be willing toe back.
Thinking of this, the old vige chief wanted to go to town to look for his son immediately. However, when he thought about the people who were digging mountains and knocking stonesingter and wondering what they were here for, he could not leave.
After freeloading a meal cooked by the imperial chef at MO Ruyues ce, the vige chiefs appetite had increased by a lot.
He was a little worried. If he went home and ate those nd and tasteless things, how could he swallow them?
After the meal, the bowls and chopsticks were removed. After drinking half a cup of tea, the six people arrived.
The six of them looked to be in their thirties or forties, and they looked even more imposing than thendowners and squires.
I, Lu Shen, pay my respects to the Princess.
Lu Shen was from the Ministry of Works, and the other five were his subordinates.
The six of them greeted MO Ruyue as soon as they saw her. MO Ruyue asked them to stand up and even gave them a seat.
This is our West River Vige Chief.
I heard that you guys were knocking on the mountains nearby. Are you looking for something?
Arent you here to measure thend for me?
MO Ruyue asked a few questions before taking a sip of water from her cup. She looked at the six people and gestured for them to continue her words.
Lu Shen was stunned when he heard MO Ruyues question. Didnt Princess Ming Yue order them to do this?
NO!
It was County Magistrate Wu who told him. Could it be that County Magistrate Wu tricked him?!
Thinking about it, they really did not offend County Magistrate Wu, but Princess Ming Yue acted as if she did not know..
He mustered his courage and looked at Princess Ming Yue carefully.
Sigh? Was she winking at him?
MO Ruyue nced at the old vige chief and gave him a meaningful nce.
Lu Shens eyes confirmed and he immediately understood that he was putting on an act for the old vige chief.
Princess Ming Yue, its like this. When we were surveying thend, we found a
type of stone at the foot of a mountain that contained gold.
Therefore, the reason why we came here this time was mainly to report this matter to the princess.
MO Ruyues eyes widened in disbelief. She ced the teacup on the table.
Is that so?
Did you report it?
I cant hide this matter.. If I hide it, Ill be harmed!
Chapter 513 - 513: He Can Only Hold On For A Moment
Chapter 513: He Can Only Hold On For A Moment
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Lu Shen saw that MO Ruyue was acting as if it was real. If he hadnt been informed beforehand, he would have been intimidated. This Princess Ming
Yue was really amazing.
He immediately frowned and said, I reported it.
The higher-ups told us to dig out more of the things as soon as possible and then transport them back to refine them.
But there are only six of us. No matter how fast we are, even if we work day and night without sleeping, without eating or drinking, we wont be able to dig out much.
The higher-ups said that it would take at least a month or two before they sent someone over.
Oh my, this old fellow has a bright future!
MO Ruyue admired Lu Shens acting talent.
I see. Why dont I find some people in the vige for you?
MO Ruyue asked.
But I dont have much sry!
Ill ask around for you. Even if you dont pay much, you can afford to pay 15 or
20 wen per person a day, right?
It was almost winter, and themoners had nothing to do. It was good to earn some money.
Lu Shen frowned and pondered for a moment before smiling.
15 or 20 wen, its not impossible to grit your teeth. If there really is someone, then this lowly official will thank Princess Ming Yue first.
Lu Shen stood up and bowed to MO Ruyue.
Hurry up and get up. Its a small matter.
You can go back first. If you find him, Ill ask the vige chief to bring him to you.
Yes, I will take my leave.
After the six people left, the old vige chief went up to MO Ruyue.
Theres gold in this mountain. Shouldnt it be yours?
That cant be. If there really is a gold mine, it doesnt belong to me.
Its against thew to hide it privately.
The old vige chief nodded. He understood.
Uncle, why dont you ask the vige if anyone is willing to dig?
He could also help ask the people in the other viges.
He told them to finish digging and leave as soon as possible so that they wouldnt be remembered.
The old vige chief thought about it.
Alright, leave this to me.
The old vige chief had always been a man of action. He immediately went home and rang the gong to gather the vigers, telling them that there might be a gold mine in the mountains.
Regardless of whether you can dig up gold or not, it will be at least 15 wen a day.
The old vige chief didnt dare to say twenty wen. What if the other party didnt give that much? Anyway, it was at least fifteen wen.
Those who are willing to go,e and register with me.
You can also go home and tell your family and friends that anyone who wants toe cane. The more people who go, the better.
When the vigers heard the news, they exploded.
Fifteen copper coins a day was indeed not a lot, and it was hard work like digging mountains, but what were they digging?
They were digging for gold!
If they dug up gold, they would more or less get some.
Of course, he had to do such a good thing. He would be a fool if he didnt!
Now that the autumn harvest was over and it was time to raise thend, they had nothing to do at home every day.
Now that there was an opportunity to earn money, there might even be gold. This was a good thing that fell from the sky!
Therefore, the daughter-inw of the Dong family went home and told her parents. The daughter-inw of the Xi family went back and told her brother and sister-inw. Those families then told their own families.
He had thought that not many people woulde, but early the next morning, arge crowd of people came. There were at least a few hundred people.
All of them were either carrying shovels or hoes in their hands. They were all rushing to West River Vige.
This scene shocked Meng Xun and the others who were in charge of the princess manor.
Those people were all holding weapons in their hands and were still aggressive. Could they be here to fight?
He heard that the vigers used those tools to fight.
The two of you,e with me. The rest of you, continue with your work.
Meng Xun picked two people who were closest to him and followed them to see the situation. If they really fought, he couldnt let Princess Ming Yue be implicated. Gu Ying had been to the capital for the past two days.
His subordinates might not be able to fight those people to the death, but they could still protect Princess Ming Yue.
When they were about to catch up to those people, Meng Xun asked one of them to report to the vige first so that they could respond in advance. He and the other followed these people to see if they could find out anything. Xiao Liuzi, go to the vige and inform them to prepare.
Xiao Liuzi, if something goes wrong, run back and ride a horse to the county to inform the magistrate.
Yes, my lord.
Xiao Liuzi ran forward quickly and caught up with the hundreds of people in a short while.
Someone noticed him. Seeing that he was running fast and had already surpassed them, someone immediately became anxious.
That bastard, how could he beat me to it?
No, we came together!
The moment this person finished speaking, he quickened his paceo The others naturally quickened their pace as well. No one wanted to fall behind. There were also countless people. If they were to fall behind, they would not have a chance.
Meng Xun and Xiao Liuzi were about to catch up to thest person in the group, but they suddenly quickened their pace. He quickened his pace as well, and his heart thumped violently because they were about to enter the vige.
As a result, the small path into the vige was overcrowded. It felt as if the small path could not hold on any longer. Dust flew everywhere where the people who led the way ran. The people behind them all ate the dust. Meng Xun and Xiao Liuzi, who were at the back, were the worst.
When they stopped at the entrance of the vige, Meng Xun and Xiao Liuzi were covered in dirt from head to toe. They were in a sorry state.
Especially Meng Xun. He was born into an aristocratic family. Even though he had joined the Ministry of Works, he had always been on horseback. He rarely ran on the dirt road like this. He was also sweating from running in a hurry. Coupled with the dirt, he could change his face in Beijing opera.
Great Lord, your Your face.
What face?
Meng Xun couldnt care less about his face. He panted a few times and patted the person closest to him.
The man turned his head and looked at the bearded man who was covered in dirt. He was at the back and was anxious that he wouldnt be able to apply. He was also patted on the shoulder from behind. He was very impatient. When he turned his head, his expression was naturally not good. He opened his mouth and choked on a mouthful of dust.
Ha You!
Whats the hurry!
Cant you see that were all waiting!
Meng Xun wiped his face with his sleeve after being spat at. His face was even more disfigured, but he still asked nicely, Big brother, may I ask why so many of you are here?
The bearded man knew that Meng Xun was cultured when he heard him speak in a cultured manner, so he deliberately softened his voice.
Little brother is a schr, right? I advise you to go home and study hard. This physical work is not something you can do.
The bearded man thought that if he really dug up gold, someone would be jealous and snatch it. Wouldnt they start a fight?
He had experienced this saying before.
Forget about this weak schr.
When Meng Xun heard the bearded man say that someone was going to die, he wondered who had provoked this group of people.
Xiao Liuzi, I forgot to bring something. Go back and get it quickly.
Meng Xun winked at Xiao Liuzi, telling him to quickly report to the officials. It would definitely be difficult for him to handle this situation, so he could only hold on for a while.
Xiao Liuzi couldnt care less about his face anymore. He turned around and ran as fast as he could. In a short while, he was far away.
The bearded man saw that the schr did not listen to his advice and actually called someone to snatch a seat. He did not want to talk to him anymore and secretly squeezed in front.
Meng Xun couldnt enter the vige even if he wanted to. The entrance was blocked. He wondered if Xiao Liuzi had seen Princess Ming Yue..
Chapter 514 - 514: Thoughts on the Gold Mine
Chapter 514: Thoughts on the Gold Mine
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
This big brother, this old man, can you make way for me to go in and look for him? Looking for a friend.
Meng Xun tried, but he couldnt squeeze in no matter how hard he tried, so he could only speak.
Go away!
Who doesnt have a great aunt or great aunt in there? My cousins cousins house is useless in there!
Meng Xun What was this?
I really have something urgent to do. Can you make an exception?
Meng Xun knew that somemoners were difficult to deal with, but he didnt expect them to be this difficult.
Who isnt anxious?
If you continue squeezing, dont me me for being impolite!
Meng Xun saw that many people were squeezing around because of him. He was already very impatient and did not dare to squeeze any further. He only hoped that Xiao Liuzi could run faster.
The vigers were also a little confused.
Those hundreds of people didnt want to let Xiao Liuzi monopolize the turtle head, so they chased him together, running so fast that the mountains shook and the earth rumbled.
The vigers thought that the earth dragon had made aeback, so they all ran out of their houses in fear and ran out of the vige together. In the end, they were at the entrance of the vige with hundreds of people. Xiao Liuzi was sandwiched between the two sides and trembled.
For a moment, the scene fell silent.
I Im just going through the motions.
Xiao Liuzi braced himself and said, then quietly moved to the side.
He was almost scared to death. Although there was a huge disparity between the two sides, especially the people from West River Vige, even the children had been mobilized. It was really a sin!
What was even more sinful was that the side with more people still knew how to bring weapons. Everyone in West River Vige had women and children in their hands. Who could they beat?
They probably wanted to escape before these people attacked. Unfortunately, they were a step too slow. The entrance of the vige was blocked!
If they were to fight, he would definitely be trampled t. He hadnt even married yet.
After moving for a while, he realized that no one was stopping him. He rolled his eyes and ran away. He even turned around to take a look.
Thats great! No one is chasing after me!
Not good! Not good! Enemies are attacking the vige-
Xiao Liuzi raised his voice, hoping that Princess Ming Yue could hear him and quickly leave this troublesome ce.
The old vige chief had woken up early today and was waiting for people toe to register at home. However, when he opened the door, he heard a rumble. He thought it was thunder and wondered why there was still thunder since it was almost winter. The main reason was that it was raining heavily.
Just as he was about to go out and take a look, he heard Xiao Liuzis surprised cry.
Xiao Liuzi had almost reached the old vige chief.
At this moment, there was no one in the vige. Xiao Liuzi only saw the old vige chief and walked toward him. What? Kid, what did you say?
Save the princess!
Xiao Liuzi said this sentence and continued to run toward the end of the vige.
He was almost there. He could already see Princess Ming Yues house.
The old vige chief was dumbfounded.
What was that kid talking about?
At this moment, he also saw a huge crowd at the entrance of the vige. They were blocked by his own vigers.
Oh my god, is this a fight?
No, no, no, it didnt look like it. Both parties were standing still and seemed to be talking.
Besides, he hadnt heard of anyone in the vige having a problem with the outside world recently. The nearby viges were all very friendly to the people in their vige.
The old vige chief frowned and quickly walked toward the vige entrance. Aiya, brother, youre finally here. Everyone in Liwan Vige has signed up!
Brother, brother, our Nanwa Vige will also sign up!
Brother Qin, our East River Vige has also signed up. Were all old neighbors!
Dont talk about useless things. If were talking about neighbors, our North
Vige is the one!
Our vige will also participate.
The originally harmonious scene exploded like water in a pot of oil.
The old vige chiefs head was buzzing when he was called brother by them.
He understood that these people were here to mine!
MO Ruyue was also called out by Xiao Liuzi. Xiao Liuzi insisted that she leave through the back mountain. She was baffled and did not believe that anyone would want to fight with their vige. She wanted to see what was going on. In the end, she saw the old vige chief being beaten up. The crowd was buzzing, and she had a headache just looking at them.
Quick) quickly bring Uncle Vige Chief out.
MO Ruyue hurriedly ordered the four guards. The old vige chief was old, he couldnt be torn apart like this.
Aiyo, bring me my copper gong, quick!
The old vige chief was rescued by the guards and wiped the sweat off his forehead.
With so many people, even if he shouted until his throat broke, he probably wouldnt be able to do it. He could only take the copper gong.
MO Ruyue signaled for Wei Yis guard to go to the Vige Chiefs house to get the gong while Wei Er, Wei San, and Wei Si helped to maintain order.
The vigers also understood that it was not because of the dragon that had turned the tables. They heaved a sigh of relief and brought their wife and child home.
Dang dang dang! Silence! Silence!
Stop arguing!
The scene finally quieted down.
The old vige chief looked at the hundreds of people with satisfaction.
Humph! I cant deal with you guys!
Themotion here also attracted Lu Shen and the other six, along with Meng Xuns construction team.
The six of them were still in the house when the hundreds of people passed by.
They thought it was thunder. Later, Xiao Liuzi went back and told people that West River Vige was in trouble. Hundreds of people wereing and were about to fight. Meng Xun asked them toe and help, and he himself rushed to report to the officials.
Before he left, he even said, Remember to grab your
Grab weapons? What weapons?
In the end, there were only bricks left, so everyone ran to West River Vige together.
Lu Shen and the other six followed the construction team. They didnt even think about it and each of them had a brick. As soon as they arrived, they heard the sound of a gong.
The bearded man and Meng Xun, who were at the back, turned around when they heard the peopleing from behind. Meng Xun looked relieved, but the bearded man looked like there were so many people fighting for his job!
And each of them holding a brick?
Big
When the construction team saw Meng Xuns ashen face, they thought that he had already fought with someone. They had the intention to fight to the death.
I say, you guys are dressed like rich people. Why are you still here? Give us poor people a way out, okay?
The bearded man saw that these people were all dressed in brocade clothes, especially the six people from Meng Xun and Lu Shens faction. Even those who were holding bricks in their hands were wearing fine cotton cloth. He could not help but shout when he saw that they were still trying to snatch 15 copper coins a day from them.
You guys know how to dig mountains?
How could they use bricks to dig a mountain?
Look at what we brought. Its either a shovel or a pickaxe. These are the correct tools for digging mountains.
If you really want to do it, hurry home and get a shovel and pick.
The bearded man thought that perhaps they would leave after he persuaded them. That way, their chances would be higher.
So many of you are here to dig the mountain?
Lu Shen looked at the West River Vige entrance that was tightly blocked.
There were hundreds of people.
The bearded man looked at Lu Shen from top to bottom.
We dont look like were here to dig the mountain. Could it be that a master dressed in brocade clothes like you looks like hes here to dig the mountain?
I think you guys shouldnte and cause trouble. You said that there was gold in that stone, but it still needs to be refined!
The bearded man felt that Lu Shen and the others were obviously here to get the gold mine.
He thought that he could cover the sky with one hand just because he was a local squire. He was really a toad in a well.
As far as he knew, there seemed to be an official in this vige. There was also a princess. He didnt know if it was true or not. Anyway, she had a background.
These people were destined to be empty-handed!
Chapter 515 - 515: Working Day and Night
Chapter 515: Working Day and Night
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
This time, Lu Shen, Meng Xun, and the others figured out what these people were here for.
Especially Meng Xun. He felt that he was simply an idiot. Fortunately, it was a false rm.
However, he did not know about the gold mine in the mountains. This matter could be big or small.
He turned his head and took a closer look at Lu Shen. He felt that he looked familiar.
You are Lord Lu?
You are Lord Meng?
Nice to meet you!
Nice to meet you too!
The bearded man thought, Are these two crazy?
Still pretending to be an official, tsk!
The old vige chief had already exined what he meant. The people who came over also understood and made way for him. They let him look for that lord and ask if he needed so many people.
The old vige chief passed by those people and saw Lu Shen.
Sir, you came at the right time.
The bearded man listened for a while. It turned out that he was the one with the problem. He had offended a real person. It was over. Could it be that he didnt want him to dig anymore?!
Before the bearded man, who had already made up his mind, could apologize to Lu Shen and the others, Lu Shen and Meng Xun were invited into the vige by the old vige chief.
ording to MO Ruyue, the more the merrier.
However, if so many people wanted to dig at the same time, they would be able to dig out an entire mountain. This was not what MO Ruyue wanted.
Besides, she couldnt afford to move the entire mountain.
MO Ruyue went to Lu Shen again and asked him if he had already surveyed the terrain and what was the best course to take.
Princess, dont worry. Weve been here for a few days, and weve personally dug.
As he spoke, he took out a simple topographic map that he had drawn.
Princess, please take a look. This path is the most suitable.
MO Ruyue took a look at it and expressed that she did not understand the red string, but it was fine as long as they understood it.
County Magistrate Wu said that Lu Shen was an outstanding person in the Ministry of Works who inspected the terrain of the mountain range. If he did not have some skills, he would not be able to sit in that position.
Then Ill leave these people to you. You can let them dig in batches. For example, if there are 100 people, 50 people today, and 50 people tomorrow, everyone will have a chance every day.
The most important thing is to ensure everyones safety. I wont allow any idents to happen.
After MO Ruyue finished speaking, Lu Shen nodded and promised that he would ensure the safety of themoners.
Lu Shen also felt Princess Ming Yues kindness. After interacting with her twice, he could feel that she cared about the people.
Even the first time they met, Princess Ming Yue had told them that they could work hard, but not risk their lives. Safety first.
The first time he heard it, he was shocked.
MO Ruyue saw that many of the people were dressed in rags, and those who looked pale were obviously from poor families.
If they dig more than a hundred catties of stones every day, you can add a few more copper coins.
Dont deduct their money. Ill investigate when the timees.
If you work hard, I wont treat you badly.
Lu Shen once again promised to get everything done for MO Ruyue.
He was also a farmer himself, so he had different feelings for farmers. After being influenced by MO Ruyue, he would not fool themoners.
The hundreds of people who came to prepare to open the mountain were full of energy.
Some families had alle, leaving their children at home. They were counting on them to mine for food this winter. They might even be able to live a rich year.
Lu Shen calcted that at most sixty to seventy people would be enough to excavate the stones every day. Therefore, he followed MO Ruyues suggestion and paid them ording to the number of stones they excavated.
Each person dug out 200 catties of stones every day, which was 15 wen, 400 catties and 30 wen, and so on, which was 100 catties and 7 wen and 5 coins.
When those people heard that the sry was calcted ording to the amount of work, they were very happy. However, when they heard that only 70 people could work every day, they panicked again.
There were so many of them. Who did it every day?
Old Brother Qin, we came early in the morning. With our rtionship, you have to let us register our names no matter what!
Brother Qin, were cousins! You have to let our vige register!
Go away. In terms of rtives, my mother is Brother Qins biological aunt!
Before that person could finish speaking, he was pulled to the side.
Uncle, Uncle, youre my biological uncle! Second Uncle, youre my biological second uncle!
Brother, youre my biological brother!
Father! Get lost~
How shameless!
MO Ruyue looked at those people who were trying to get close to their rtives. They were from a small vige, and it was normal for them to be rted to their rtives before the Five Blessings. However, someone had already called him father. She could not bear to watch them.
Father!
If you shout again, Ill beat you up!
The person who called him father was right next to the bearded man. The bearded man only wanted to hit him when he heard this persons shameless call.
This big brother, can you move aside?
Before he could finish, the bearded man pulled him aside.
Stop, stop. Whos your big brother? I dont know you. Let me tell you, its useless to try to build a rtionship with me.
The bearded man looked as if he didnt want toe near him.
Son, youre back!
The old vige chiefs eyes suddenly lit up as he looked at the person who called him father. That person was not someone else but his son.
Father?
The old vige chiefs son looked at this scene and was confused. What was the vige doing? Why were there so many people blocking the entrance?
He had listened to his father yesterday and discussed with his wife about bringing the whole family back. In the end, he was blocked outside the vige and could not enter the vige. His wife and children were in the carriage outside the vige. He came over to see what was going on.
He did not expect his father to be so popr.
Father!
Father!
Seeing that the old vige chief had actually agreed, two of them also called out.
Before the old vige chief could say a word to his son, he was about to faint again from the shouts of those people.
Dang, dang, dang!
The sound of the gong was unusually soft. All of you shut up. Dont shout!
For a moment, no one dared to breathe loudly.
This is my biological son!
Make way for my son to go home first!
As for all of you, since so many of you are here, you will naturallye up with a n. Its useless for you to argue with me. Im not the one who pays.
Those who want to do it are all waiting.
Everyone made way for the old vige chiefs sons carriage to enter the vige.
The bearded man was extremely regretful. Why was he so unlucky?
Was it toote to apologize now?
Meanwhile, MO Ruyue had already started discussing with Lu Shen and the others. Meng Xun was also invited to MO Ruyues house with a dejected face.
The construction team under Meng Xun had all gone back after figuring out the reason. The princess manor was almostpleted, and they wanted to finish it as soon as possible and go home.
It would be good if so many people could dig together, but they could not all dig at once. They only needed one cave.
With so many people, we really cant use them all. We cant even travel day and night!
Lu Shen was also a little worried. He did not expect so many people toe. It was difficult to see who would stay and who would leave. Got it. Since you all want to do it, then work day and night!
MO Ruyue decided. Working day and night?
Yes, I am.
Dig from the two ends of the route youre looking at to the middle. With this distribution, the people in the four sses will not stop during the day and night. Moreover, everyone has work to do every day, so they can dig through the mountain faster.
Heh, shes really quick-witted!
Chapter 516 - 516: Women ‘s Law of Shopping
Chapter 516: Women s Law of Shopping
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Lu Shen felt that this method was feasible, so he went with the vige chief to talk to those people.
Those people also felt that it was feasible. This way, everyone could do it. Even the bearded man at the end felt his intestines turn green.
This was because the little schr that he despised actually knew the person who asked them to dig the mountain. Moreover, he saw that they had a good rtionship.
MO Ruyue didnt care about those things anymore. She asked Wei Yi and the others to go to the town bank to exchange for copper coins. She gave them to the workers and gave them a sry every day. This way, they would be able to work harder with cash every day.
County Magistrate Wu was brought here by Xiao Liuzi along with his official. From afar, he could see the people at the entrance of Xihe Vige.
Quick, quick, quick!
You guys go and stop them first!
When he arrived, he saw that those armed people were actually lining up. There was a table at the entrance of the vige, and someone was writing something.
County Magistrate Wu
Xiao Liuzi
County Magistrate Wu saw Meng Xun and Lu Shening out and quickly went forward to ask what was going on.
MO Ruyue went to the sanatorium.
She found the old man who had learned fried chicken and duck from her.
Let me tell you, if you have a few more people, you can make pancakes and stew big bone soup every day. The bones are cheap, but the soup is delicious. Sell them to the mountain area every day and youll definitely make money.
Hey, Ill listen to Doctor MO!
The people in the sanatorium were not stupid. Some of them even wanted to mine.
MO Ruyue felt that as long as they were capable, they would do it.
Oh right, make a lot of rabbit meat. Its all braised and cut into small pieces.
I want all the rabbit skins.
It was especially white. It would look good if she made a cloak for Tang Tang in winter.
The seasoned soldiers all remembered it and immediately started working.
Those people had to eat dinner at night, and the meal in the middle of the night had to be prepared.
After MO Ruyue had arranged for the sanatorium, she went to Wang Dazhus house with Qin Qingfei.
You two can go and buy some groceries. Small snacks. Small snacks can also make their own. First, make less and prepare more groceries.
Also, take Mrs. Chen with you. Remember to bring in different goods.
If there are other people who want to get it, just pull them together and dont buy the same goods.
Can this really work?
Mrs. Wang was also very moved by MO Ruyues ttery.
Even if it doesnt work this time, when they finish digging the mountain and Gu Yings academy opens, it will definitely work.
When the timees, our vige will set up a stall to sell everything we can.
When the timees, Ill organize a vige appreciation meeting and get some new things from the capital.
Sisters-inw, trust me and listen to me. I wont let you suffer.
Alright, lets do it!
Mrs. Wang and Qin Qingfei made the decision and called the men to prepare to get someone to stock up in a while.
The old vige chief and Lu Shen discussed and assigned those people. They started work on the same day.
The foot of the mountain near West River Vige was very lively. In just a few days, many people woulde from time to time on the vige road.
Some of them were watching their own family work, while others were purely watching the show.
If it wasnt for the fact that women were weak, many wives would want to do it.
Many people saw a row of neat wooden signs erected at the entrance of West River Vige. On them were all kinds of vivid daily necessities, snacks, and small toys. They were very fresh.
Look, this is a steamed bun. It really looks like it. The wrinkles on the steamed bun look real.
It looks even more delicious than the buns in town. This is a painting drawn on a wooden board. Why is it so realistic?
This is candied haws, right?
Yo, this is a butterfly pearl flower!
Those aunties and young wives studied the signs thoroughly in front of them.
The few of them looked at one of their wives and especially liked the butterfly on a wooden sign. They felt that the butterfly looked very beautiful and wanted to bring it home.
She looked around and saw that no one was paying attention, so she reached out to pull it out.
She had just made a move when she was discovered.
What are you guys doing?
If you dont ask, youre a thief!
Gou Dan led his friends to patrol the vige entrance. They saw these people surrounding their viges wooden sign and pointing at it. They even wanted to steal it.
They were the small patrol team in the vige. They only took care of dinner because the adults were going home to cook.
Gou Dan was sent to a private school by Qin Qingfei a month ago, and he learned a lot.
He had only learned it today. At first, he did not really understand the meaning, but after asking Da Bao, he exined it to him. He suddenly felt that he was very knowledgeable when he learned it and applied it on the spot.
The wife didnt expect that she would be discovered before she could do anything bad. Her face turned red and she quickly retracted her hand, squeaking.
I Just look at the dust on it. Let me wipe it. Dont you guys not know how to be kind.
There was no need to mention the guilt.
Gou Dan wanted to say something but was stopped by Tang Tang.
Aunt, the painting on our wooden token is beautiful, right? This is my mothers painting!
Our vige sells these things. If you like them, you can go in and buy them. There are many things!
Youre new customers, and were giving new customers discounts for the next three days!
Tang Tang remembered MO Ruyues words. If anyone saw it, introduce them to the stall. She introduced it, and she would get a 10% bonus for every item sold!
Yo, whose little doll is this? Shes really beautiful and has a glib tongue.
These wives were all here to deliver food to their men. Their vige was not far from here. They thought that the men would have to spend money to buy food here, so they might as well walk a little more and deliver it here. It would not cost much and they could save a few wens.
If it was a month, it would be a few hundred wen or more.
There were many people like them.
The reason why MO Ruyue had asked the vige to set up those stalls was because there would definitely be people who woulde to deliver food and drinks when they saw so many people working. Even if these people did not buy anything, they would just look around. If they saw more, they would know that there was a street of stalls in West River Vige.
Moreover, there was no need to pay a stall fee in their vige. The cost was not high, and the price was cheaper than in the town. If those people wanted to buy something one day, the first thing they would think of was the stall in
West River Vige, which was close to them.
There was also thew of women shopping. If you didnt buy anything today, you wouldnt buy anything tomorrow, but if you shopped again the day after tomorrow, you would definitely buy at least one or two things that you liked.
After all, she had shopped a few times and felt that she would lose out if she didnt buy something.
These wives were good housekeepers. They felt guilty because of what had happened before. Tang Tangs little mouth was sweet and crisp, and she looked cute. They followed her to the stalls in front of Mrs. Wangs house to take a look.
They read from beginning to end and even asked about the price. After a round ofments, they did not buy anything, not even a headband.
Mrs. Wang and the others were a little anxious. They had been setting up the stall for a day, but they still hadnt sold anything. These things had cost them a lot of money.
What should we do? If we cant even sell a hair tie, whats the point of setting up a stall?
You cant just throw these things in your hands, right?
It was quite a few taels of silver. The funds were deducted from the betrothal gift for his sons wife..
Chapter 517 - 517: Infighting
Chapter 517: Infighting
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Mrs. Chen frowned.
They had no choice but to say that they did not want to buy it!
When the other vigers saw that there were six families including Mrs. Wang, they all went to buy a lot of things. They actually set up a stall in the vige and thought that they were daydreaming.
However, the few wives looked at it for a long time. They felt that it was okay.
They didnt know if they bought anything in the end. Those people left reluctantly. They probably didnt bring money.
This time, they were also helping tofort Mrs. Wang and the others.
After MO Ruyue finished exining the medical knowledge to the female doctors, she ran over.
Did anyonee to see the stall?
Yes, but I didnt even sell a hair tie.
Theres no hurry. Its fine as long as someone is watching.
Think about it, its only the first day. There are many stalls in town that cant sell a hair tie a day.
The few of them thought about it and felt a little relieved.
Its almost dinner time. Lets close the stall and set it up tomorrow.
MO Ruyue helped Mrs. Wang and Qin Qingfei clean up the stall. Just as they were about to go back) a man on horseback came to the vige entrance. She turned around and took a closer look. The man was wearing the uniform of the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency.
MO Ruyue had a hunch that this person was here to deliver a letter to her, and that letter was probably written by Gu Ying.
Gu Ying went to the capital and said that he would be back soon. It had been almost five days and he had not returned.
As expected, the man stopped in front of MO Ruyue.
Princess Ming Yue, your letter!
Thank you!
By the way, did Gu Ying say when he would be back?
If it was any other messenger, MO Ruyue would definitely not ask. However, this person was from the same family as Gu Ying, so he should know a little about Gu Yings schedule.
Eldest Young Master said that it will take two to three days. If theres nothing else, he wille back as soon as possible. If theres something else, it might take three to five days.
MO Ruyue nodded and asked Wei Yi to take care of this person. She quickly went home and opened the letter.
Most of the contents of the letter were Gu Ying telling her why he had not returned after so many days and that he had to stay in the capital for three to five days. It was because some of the apprentices he recruited lived in remote ces. Many people did not know where West River Vige was, so he had to wait for them to return.
There were also two lines of love at the end of the letter.
MO Ruyue looked at the sentence, Theres a beautiful woman, I cant forget her. I havent seen her for a day, and I miss her crazily. Although it was a little mushy, she liked it quite a bit.
Gu Ying even changed the word theres a beauty to theres a beautiful woman so that it wouldnt seem so frivolous.
It was getting dark now. MO Ruyue told the messenger from the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency to stay in the vige for the night and leave early the next morning. She also sent a letter to Gu Ying.
The messenger had already been instructed to wait for the princesss reply, so he naturally had to stay.
MO Ruyues letter was simple. First of all, her family was doing well. Thinking of the big n to set up a stall in the vige, she asked Gu Ying to help her bring back some small toys when he returned from the capital. The more, the better.
Thetest gadgets in the capital were definitely more popr than ordinary goods.
MO Ruyue always wanted Gu Ying to do the work. Although they were dating now, she couldnt just let him do everything for her.
Therefore, MO Ruyue also wrote a sentence at the end of the letter: Come back early.
That night, something happened at the mine.
The guards and nannies didnt agree to let MO Ruyue go to the other side of the mountain at night. They told Wei Yi to check on the situation and then report to her.
MO Ruyue saw that they were insistent and the two little ones were staring at her with eager eyes. They looked like they wanted her to go with them, so she gave up too.
Lu Shen and the others were watching over the other side. It shouldnt be too big of a deal. It might just be some entanglements.
Wei Yi quickly found out that they were working during the day and had yet to leave work. They wanted to work a little longer, and those who had to work at night could only go back to work after the rest of the day had left work. The two groups of people quarreled and almost got into a fight. If it wasnt for the old vige chief telling them to scram, they would have been pped in the face.
They didnt fight on the first day because nothing like this had happened. They didnt know that if they were to exceed 100 catties and reach 150 catties, they would be paid a few more copper coins.
Some people wanted to take advantage of the situation and knock down the stone from the side of the tunnel. Because only so many people could enter at once, they thought that they could only squeeze to the side without stopping. In the end, Lu Shen found out and directly sent that person away. Such disobedient and self-righteous people would only cause trouble for them.
Lu Shen killed the chicken to warn the monkeys. Only then did those people be really obedient. They did what they were told and did not dare to go west.
When Gu Ying received the letter, he couldnt wait to open it. When he saw thest four words, he was overjoyed.
MO Ruyue asked him toe back early. Did it mean that she missed him too?
Definitely!
Because of those four words, Gu Ying was in high spirits for two whole days.
Currently, the Liu family had few businesses left in the capital, and they were all struggling to survive.
They could only me themselves. They had no choice but to bang their heads against the wall.
He had nned to bring back all the things he had collected from the Liu Family for MO Ruyue.
Thinking of what MO Ruyue had said in her letter, he personally went to collect many of the small toys that MO Ruyue needed.
Many people in the capital knew Gu Ying. He was not very famous before, but from the time he dropped from the top schr to the second rank holder, most people in the capital knew him, especially those officials.
Gu Ying had been summoned by the Emperor twice this time. Everyone felt that although this person did not go on an official career, he was still very favored by the Emperor. Many families asked their sons and nephews to befriend him.
They saw him buying some small things on the street for the past two days, and he bought quite a lot of them. Many of them were for womens household use, which was very thought-provoking.
It was said that this Gu Ying was still single and had never proposed a marriage. Moreover, he had always been rejected. Now, when they saw him buying these things, those who were curious would ask him.
Gu Ying was annoyed by the question and did not hide it. He directly said that he bought it for his sweetheart.
However, when those people asked who their sweetheart was, he said that they were too nosy and directly talked them to death.
After Gu Ying came to the capital, the Emperor had people pay attention to his movements, but he did not monitor him. He just wanted to prevent the Liu family from discovering him.
After learning that he had received a letter, Gu Ying had happily gone to the streets to buy some small toys. He knew that Gu Ying must have bought them for MO Ruyue.
He was MO Ruyues brother!
Someone, go and pay close attention to Gu Ying. What did he buy? Then, buy better ones that are double the ones he bought.
Gu Ying did not know what the Emperor was thinking, and even if he did, he would not care. In any case, he could only consider himself as a member of his family.
MO Ruyue didnt know that the two men in the capital were fighting each other openly and secretly. She was currently doing some publicity.
Several families in the vige saw Mrs. Wang and the others setting up a stall and felt that it should be feasible. There were also many families who did not need to shout. They followed them and bought some small toys to set up a stall.
They were smart enough to rely on their own observations to make sure that they did not ovep with Mrs. Wang and the others. These people were bing more and more worry-free..
Chapter 518 - 518: Buying a Hairband
Chapter 518: Buying a Hairband
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue was also itching to see those people setting up stalls. She felt that she should set up a small stall to support herself.
She had basically all the little toys, so MO Ruyue decided to take a different approach and think of barbecue.
Now the mountains and ins are full of chickens, ducks, rabbits.
The sanatorium provided food every day, so they didnt consume much. Every household in the vige also raised a lot of them. There were oftenrge wild animals like wild boars in the fire belt on the mountain, because those wild animals always wanted to eat the chickens and ducks on the mountain. They were all walking into the trap.
She couldnt use up all the cymen, and the main thing was that she wanted to set up a stall.
Today was Qin Qingyans day off. He had invited many ssmates to his house.
MO Ruyue greeted Qin Qingyans ssmates with barbecue.
Barbecue skewers were considered very fresh. They had never even seen them before, let alone eat them.
Although the Immortal Crane Restaurant in town also had fresh dishes with various seasonings, which were expensive and could not be afforded by ordinary people, there were two who had gone there once or twice with their parents and could not forget about it.
It would be too expensive for family members to eat there. It was simply too expensive to eat skewers in West River Vige.
Brother Qin, can Ie again next time?
I want to bring Brother Wang and Brother Chen along.
Qin Qingyans eyes turned red from the food his ssmates had eaten. They were really too gluttonous. They must have been pretending to be gentle in school.
Sister-inw had taken out all these things, so they didnt have to spend much money, but how much did they eat?
He could still sell it for quite a day. Now, they wanted toe back and bring someone else. He was about to say no when he saw his sister-inw giving him a look.
Alright then.
Look at the stalls in our vige. There are all kinds of gadgets. Do vou want to bring one or two back to make your younger brothers, sisters, and nephews happy?
A few students who were eating happily felt that Qin Qingyans suggestion was very good, so they began to shop at the stalls at the vige entrance
Along the way, everyone bought one or two items. This made the vigers extremely happy. The stall was finally open.
After the students had bought their things, Qin Qingyan politely invited them home for a drink, but they went without a second thought!
Tang Tang and Si Bao came back with their friends.
The moment they entered the courtyard, the students were so scared that they retreated.
Woof woof!
Behind the two little kids was arge group of big ck dogs, and in the middle were two sika deer, one big and one small.
It was a spotted deer. They were not seeing things.
Lafu used his paw to push away the barking dog.
Cant you see that these are guests?
If they scared the guests, they would be nagged by their masters again, saying that they didnt have good eyesight and couldnt teach their children well.
It was too difficult to be a dog. Lafu and the other dogs envied Lu.
Why are there so many dogs?
Lafu heard that someone had noticed them and quickly wagged its tail to show its friendliness to the guests.
Look, we are very obedient and gentle.
Today, the dogs had a holiday. Usually, they had to guard the mountain.
Uncle, are these guests your ssmates?
Tang Tang asked Qin Qingyan with her big, watery eyes.
Yeah.
He didnt know why Tang Tang was asking such questions or what she wanted to do. He felt that she had a purpose.
Hello, uncles.
Tang Tang suddenly bowed to Qin Qingyans ssmates.
Qin Qinzvans ssmates were shocked bv her actions and the wav she addressed them.
Qin Qingyan, on the other hand, acted as if it was a matter of course.
Whats wrong?
Dont tell me you want her to call you brothers and then call me uncle?
They shook their heads in unison.
Hehehe.
Tang Tang looked at them and found it funny.
Si Bao looked at his sister helplessly. He had never understood why his sisters personality was so different from his.
No matter how different she was, she was still his biological sister.
Uncles, do you have a cute niece like me or a cute nephew like my brother?
When the students heard Tang Tangs question, they really thought about it.
Who didnt have a child at home? Even if they didnt have nephews or nieces, they would still have a younger sister and brother.
Although many of them were siblings, they had the same father as them.
Those with children nodded.
Uncles, since youve alle to our West River Vige to y, you must bring something home for your cute nephews, nieces, brothers, and sisters.
I know an aunt who sells toys suitable for children. Shouldnt you go and pick one or two to bring home?
Every time our Little Uncle went out to y, he would bring something back for me and Big Brother. We were always very happy.
Tang Tang turned around and asked Si Bao.
Isnt it big brother?
Yes.
Si Bao could still say that, even though every time he brought him a pen or paper, if he was unhappy, his uncle would probably beat him up. The students understood what Tang Tang meant.
One of the students felt that what Tang Tang said made sense.
Why dont we go and take a look?
In the end, the students were fooled by Tang Tang and went to buy a lot of gadgets.
Tang Tangs eyes curved into crescents as she smiled. She even politely sent off her uncles ssmates and promised to treat them well the next time they came.
Qin Qingyan went to send off his ssmates, and Tang Tang pulled Si Bao to the stall. She reached out her fair and tender hands and said sweetly to Mrs. Chen and the others, Aunt, Ive already calcted my interest, 36 wen.
Aunt) you have 29 wen here.
Aunt Wang, you have 26 wen here.
Tang Tang reported sweetly. The stall owners who were named by her were counting the amount of money Tang Tang had just reported.
The adults were all willing to count. If Tang Tang had not been clever and sweet with her words, bringing people to their stall to buy things, they would probably not have been able to sell even a hair tie if they had stood here alone.
The stall owners counted the coins for Tang Tang and handed them to her. Tang Tang didnt take them immediately.
Aunt, Im your niece, right?
Qin Qingfei was amused by her question and pinched her chubby cheeks.
This little girl was getting cuter and cuter.
Of course. If youre not my niece, who else can you be?
Qin Qingfei knew that this little girl was going to be mischievous again. She wondered what ideas she hade up with.
Aunt) look at the color of the headband on my braid. Its too light, right?
Ive been tying it for a few days, but I havent changed a hair tie.
Qin Qingfei and the other adultsughed when they saw Tang Tangs pitiful expression.
Aiyo, Xiao Fei, hurry up and give your niece a headband!
You have no eyesight at all!
Hahahaha
Mrs. Chen was the first to lose control.
No, its my fault. Come,e, Aunt will give you two sticks!
As Qin Qingfei spoke, she took out two red hairbands from the stall and handed them to Tang Tang.
Thank you, Aunt. You are indeed my biological aunt, hehe.
Qin Qingfei didnt know whether tough or cry. If she didnt give her a headband today, she wouldnt be her aunt anymore.
The few of them smiled and looked at what the little girl wanted a headband for.
She said that the headband on her head had not been changed for several days, and the color was still a little light. However, the brocade headband was decorated with pearls the size of rice grains. The most important thing was that it was given by the emperor. Even the daughter of the richest family in the county could not afford such a headband..
Chapter 519 - 519: Bullying the Small
Chapter 519: Bullying the Small
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Tang Tang took the two red ropes that Qin Qingfei had given her and split the bonus copper coins that they had given her into two portions. She strung them together into a string. She kept one string for herself and gave the other to her brother.
Hehe, thank you again, aunties. Lets go y~.
Tang Tang was very happy to receive a bonus. She held the string of bonuses in her hand and wanted to go home to ask her mother for credit. She was really capable!
Following behind the two children was, of course, a group of dogs and two deer.
This scene was witnessed by many people. Not only were the children envious, even the adults were envious. This money was really easy to earn.
Many people had made up their minds to buy some small toys or other things tomorrow morning. They wanted toe and set up their stalls together.
MO Ruyue was attending sses at the hospital. Tang Tang could not wait to let her mother know how much she had earned and how capable she was. She and her brother each held a wad of money in their hands and ran to the hospital. The hospital was at the other end of the vige, and they had to cross half the vige.
However, before they reached the hospital, they were stopped by three children.
Tang Tang and Si Bao were not familiar with these three children because they had only returned from outside in the past two days. They were originally with their parents in other ces.
A little kid cant take so much money. Why dont you give it to me? Ill help you keep it and buy you something delicious to eat.
Tang Tang nced at Si Bao, who rolled his eyes.
The siblings did not intend to pay attention to these three stupid boys. Just as they were going around them, they were blocked by these three people.
The little kid has so much money in his hands. Its very dangerous. He will be deceived by bad people.
Si Bao pulled Tang Tang behind him and stuffed the string of copper coins in his hand into her hand. He wanted to show the three of them the Qin familys fists so that they would know why the two four-year-olds dared to take so much money and wander around the vige.
Just as Si Bao was about to roll up his sleeves and make a move, he was pulled back by Tang Tang.
Leave it to me.
Although Si Bao didnt fight the crowd, he didnt make way.
Its not good for girls to fight. Girls have to be more refined.
Si Bao tried to persuade his sister.
I promise I wont fight. I definitely wont fight. If you really dont believe me, I swear to God.
As she spoke carefully, she held two strings of money in her left hand, raised her right hand, and raised her thumb and pinky with three fingers, as if she was about to swear.
Si Bao quickly pulled his sisters right hand off.
Its not worth it to swear for such a person. Youre a girl, so you should know how to be reserved.
Brother, are you possessed by Granny Rong?
Tang Tang looked at Si Bao and trembled. She took a small step back.
No, no, what are you talking about?
Si Bao thought of Granny Rongs chattering and quickly shook his head.
Thats good. Help me hold the money.
Dont say anything else. Sister Chun Hua will be here soon.
Si Bao had no choice but to shut up. In any case, these three brats would not dare to do anything to the siblings in the vige. Even if that was the case, he had the ability to beat these three brats down.
If it really didnt work, there was still Lafu and the others.
As for Lafu and the other dogs, they had not made a sound until now because everyone in the vige knew each other. Although the three people had bad intentions, they had not done any substantial harm to the two little ones.
Most importantly, Lafu wanted to protect the two little masters, but Tang Tang pulled him behind her and red at him.
Even so, Lafu and the others followed closely behind Tang Tang and Si Bao, ready for any moment.
The three boys were a little scared when they saw Lafu and the other dogs, but they were really drooling over the two copper coins. Moreover, they had been back in the vige for a few days and knew these dogs. They knew that they were actually very docile.
It had been so long, but those dogs had not shown any expressions of baring their teeth at them. The three boys did not take Lafu and the others seriously.
Si Bao took the two strings of copper coins and wanted to see what his sister would do.
He guessed that he wanted to reason with these three bullies. He reckoned that such people would not be reasonable.
Just as he was thinking about this, Tang Tang pulled out the soft whip at her waist at lightning speed and whipped the three boys twice each.
Moreover, it was their faces that were pped. The three boys were in so much pain that they couldnt even open their eyes for a moment, let alone pounce over and hit the two little ones.
You stinky girl who was born without a mother
Pa, pa, pa!
Tang Tang immediately whipped the brats hand that was covering his face, then whipped his mouth.
Tang Tang and Si Bao hated it when people talked about their mother.
Si Bao didnt have a ce to put the two strings of money in his hand, so he could only take it and kick the mans leg.
Lafu, surround them!
Tang Tangs childish voice was mixed with anger.
Lafu brought the other dogs and surrounded the three kids.
The other two who were still standing had their eyes and mouths intact because they werent as fast as the one who had a bad mouth. They had also seen the scene just now. They looked at Tang Tang and Si Bao as if they were monsters.
They didnt want the two strings of money at the moment. They wanted to go home and find their mothers. However, the moment they moved, the dogs showed their sharp teeth at them.
The two of them were about to say something soft and ask Tang Tang to let them go home when they were interrupted.
Ah- Mother, sob sob
Whats wrong, Miss?
Chun Hua came out with a food box to look for Miss. Before she could see her, she heard her crying and quickly ran over, sweating anxiously.
The young miss and the young master had asked her toe back to make mung bean cakes and insisted on eating them personally. It had only been a short while since theyst saw her, but the young miss had actually cried. Moreover, she was crying so badly. Something big must have happened!
Sure enough, when she found the young miss and young master, she saw Lafu and a few other dogs surrounding three 12 or 13 -year-old boys.
How dare you! How dare you bully my Little Miss and Little Master! Someonee!
Youre looking for a beating!
Before Chun Hua could finish her sentence, Qin Qingyan had sent his ssmates off and returned home without seeing the two kids. Qin Qingshuang said that they were going to the hospital to look for their sister-inw and didnt want her to follow them, so he came over. He wanted to see Xia Zhi and the others, but when he heard Chun Huas words, he went up and beat them up without saying anything.
He also saw the whip marks on the three peoples bodies and knew that they must have been whipped by Tang Tang or Si Bao. However, that was not a reason for them to be forgiven just because they bullied his siblings!
In the past, when his family members were bullied by outsiders, he could only use stupid methods that hurt himself and the enemy. But now, it was not like before. He had grown up and could protect the people he wanted to protect.
Chun Hua didnt show any mercy when she saw Qin Qingyan beat the heads of the three people into pig heads. Those three scoundrels had bullied her young master and young miss. ording to her thoughts, it would not be an exaggeration to beat them to death.
Wei San and Wei Si also heard themotion. When they rushed over, Qin Qingyan had already finished.
The three kids were beaten up so badly that they cried and howled. Of course, they also attracted the attention of a few families nearby..
Chapter 520 - 520: A Bad Beam Leaves a Bad Root
Chapter 520: A Bad Beam Leaves a Bad Root
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Whose child is this?
Some people saw that Lafu and the other dogs were still surrounding the three people who were beaten up and grimacing. They knew that they were going against the Qin familys children.
The three children cried too miserably. Someone recognized who they were and went to look for their parents. Soon, many people gathered here.
Tang Tang was still crying. Unlike the three boys on the ground, she was wiping her tears away and crying her heart out.
What happened to Tang Tang?
Of course, MO Ruyue also came over. She didnt understand what was going on when she arrived) but her heart ached when she saw her daughter crying sadly.
Hearing MO Ruyues voice, Tang Tang jumped out of Chun Huas arms and pounced on MO Ruyue.
Mother, they scolded me. And they want the money my brother and I earned.
Although Tang Tang was crying, it didnt affect her ability to speak clearly.
Si Baos eyes reddened when he heard his sisters words. He threw himself into MO Ruyues arms. MO Ruyue hugged him andforted him.
MO Ruyue didnt need to ask to know what Tang Tang meant when she said they were scolding her.
Other than badmouthing their parents, there was nothing else that could make the two children cry so sadly.
She med herself for being too busy recently, so much so that she didnt spend much time with her children.
Who hit my son!
A few people came from the west of the vige. In front of them was a woman with an unfriendly expression and a sharp voice.
Dont be afraid, Mother is here.
MO Ruyue was afraid that the two children would be frightened, so she gestured to Wei Yi.
Tell them to shut up. When my son is no longer afraid, we can talk about it.
Yes.
Wei Yi walked toward the women and men who were rushing over.
At first, the three children did not believe that the badly beaten pig head was their son.
However, when he saw that they were wearing the clothes he had personally brought for his son in the morning, and one of them had even personally put them on for his son, he was instantly furious.
His precious son was at home, so he was the crown prince. However, he was beaten up like this when he came out. His heart ached. Then, he was furious and went berserk. He wanted to drag the person who beat him out and cut him into pieces!
Which deted
Wei Yi immediately went forward and pressed on the dark fat womans mute acupoint. The dark fat woman roared for a long time before she realized that she couldnt make a sound. Her mouth was wide open and her eyes were filled with fear!
Why did she suddenly be mute?
The other two women also opened their mouths to curse, but Wei Yi pressed on their mute acupoints with each hand.
Wei Yi did not say anything. After pointing at the three women, he looked at the others, as if he would point at whoever spoke.
The few people who ran over also understood his gaze. For a moment, they were so scared that they did not dare to make a sound.
The three men saw Wei Yi hit their wife, and even the sons of bitches couldnt take it anymore. Unfortunately, before they could touch anyone, they were kicked down by Wei Yi and couldnt get up for a while.
Wei Yi knew his limits. He wouldnt cause them fatal injuries and would justy in bed for a few days.
Everyone thought to themselves, It hurts!
Tang Tang, who was crying in MO Ruyues arms, looked at Wei Yis acupuncture technique with sparkling eyes. She wondered when she would be able to learn it.
No, no one taught her. No, she had to learn this move too. It was too cool!
That way, the other party would be mute, and she could hit them however she wanted. They could not even scream. Wouldnt that be too awesome?
Si Bao looked at his sisters expression and knew what she was thinking without asking.
He actually thought so too.
Seeing that the two children had stopped crying, MO Ruyue tucked their hair behind their ears.
Which one of you tell Mother what happened?
Qin Qingyan also came over and listened carefully.
It was all his fault. He was clearly at home, but his nephew and niece were bullied.
My brother and I brought Uncles ssmates to buy some things from the stall.
Then, our 10% bonus will be these two strings of copper coins. Burp.
Tang Tang had been crying her heart out before, but now she stopped crying and even burped from time to time.
Those bad children had scolded her mother. She was angry because she was useless. If she was a little more powerful, those people would only hide when they saw her. How would they dare to scold her?
Si Bao added when his sister stopped, These three adults actually wanted to cheat my sister and me of our copper coins. If we didnt give them, they would stop us from leaving. They even scolded us for not being taught by our mothers.
Si Bao was also heartbroken by this sentence. At this moment, he pursed his lips again. It was all his fault for being too slow and not having the chance to hit those three people. It was really too infuriating!
Si Bao and Tang Tang had been talking smoothly and clearly. Although they were still crying and burping, their words were clearly heard by everyone present. Moreover, these two little fellows had always been liked by the vigers. They were obedient, sensible, and sweet-mouthed. No one would suspect that they were lying.
Besides, what Si Bao and Tang Tang said was the truth.
After listening to the two childrens story, they all looked at the three people who had been beaten into pig heads with condemnation.
Not at all. We didnt.
One of the three idiots who had been beaten up into pig heads could still speak and quickly exined.
He could also see the current situation. Even if his parents came, they would be at a disadvantage. They had kicked an iron te this time.
Who knew that these two little kids were not to be provoked? If he had known earlier, he would not have dared to do so even if he was given ten times the courage!
Tang Tang and Si Bao were even angrier when they saw that those people were still shameless enough to not admit it.
It was fine if he bullied a child, but he was also so irresponsible!
She angrily ran over to the three of them and waved her sleeve, scattering some powder from her sleeve. MO Ruyue stared at her with wide eyes.
Say it again. Why did you stop me and my brother?
If it werent for our Lafu and the others, our two strings of money might have been snatched away by you three shameless people!
Seeing Tang Tangs eloquence and ndering their sons, the three women who had their mute acupoints struck wanted to point at her to refute but realized that they couldnt make a sound. Wei Yi nced at her coldly and couldnt make a sound. They could only be anxious and angry.
Tang Tang walked to the pig-faced man who had been beaten the most. Did you stop my brother and me and ask me to give you money to buy food?!
Why arent you telling the truth?
I just saw that you two little kids actually have two strings of money in your hands and wanted to cheat them over.
In the beginning, he struggled to not say it, but as he spoke, he told the truth. Once he opened his mouth, he simply gave up and said everything.
The other two people also told their original reasons. They saw that the two of them were both little kids, but they had so much money. They thought that no one would know if they cheated them of their money.
This was not the first time they had done something like this, and they had never been discovered.
The spectators instantly despised the three children who had been beaten into pig heads even more. Even their parents despised them.
As the saying goes, if the upper beam is not straight, the lower beam will be crooked. For such a big child to have such a temperament, it could be seen how his parents usually raised him..
Chapter 521 - 521: Getting Promoted When I’m Old
Chapter 521: Getting Promoted When Im Old
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gou Dan doesnt want to hang out with people like this in the future.
Little Niu Er, look at us and stay far away from them in the future. We cant y with such people.
Thats right, thats right. He might lead his own good children astray.
Thats right. Im clearly the kind of person who has no mother to teach me, but I still have the face to say something else!
The vigers pulled their children and immediately used the three naughty children as negative examples for on-the-spot education.
The three women who couldnt speak didnt expect their son to really do such a thing. If they did it, then so be it. Why were they so stupid as to say it in front of everyone?
This was not how they were taught at home.
MO Ruyue gestured for Wei Yi to unlock the acupoints of the three women who had their mute acupoints sealed.
The three women regained their freedom to speak, and they no longer had the arrogance from before. Although they were very unwilling to admit that it was their childrens fault, the truth was right in front of them.
None of the vigers were on their side. They were not stupid enough to argue with MO Ruyue and the others.
One of the women stepped forward and pulled up her good-for-nothing child.
Lets go. Dont embarrass yourself here!
She had risen to the top and be a phoenix. The teeth grinding between children had to be so serious. She did not even look at your poor appearance. In the future, if you see her, you have to take a detour. Do you remember? The other two didnt say anything, but it was obvious that they were on the same side as the person who spoke and agreed with what she said.
The three families were about to bring their three children home when MO Ruyue interrupted them coldly.
You want to leave just like that?
Teeth grinding between children? Are those three children in your family?
Theyre ten years older than my children!
He was going to be married and be a father in two years, but he didnt even know how to apologize if he did something wrong?
You guys are really well-educated.
MO Ruyues tone was t, but it was like a sharp p on their faces. Our child has already been beaten up by you. How else can we apologize?
We didnt ask you for medical fees. Its already good enough!
Thats right.
The mother of the three brats was already holding back her anger, but she didnt expect them to be so unreasonable. She couldnt suppress her anger.
After she finished speaking, she looked at Wei Yi warily, afraid that he woulde over and heal their mute acupoints.
This person was simply a monster!
The three of them were beaten up like this because they were useless, but that doesnt mean that youre in the right.
The three of them were beaten up by me.
If it werent for our dog following us, my nephew and niece would have been bullied by these three shameless people!
Qin Qingyan was furious. He didnt care about what his teacher had taught him.
You have to apologize to my nephew and niece!
Apologize?
Dream on!
They had always been the ones who made others suffer. They had never suffered such a loss before.
MO Ruyue saw the expressions of the three families and stopped Qin Qingyan.
We dont need an apology that isnt sincere. Let them be.
MO Ruyue pulled Si Bao with one hand and Tang Tang with the other.
Go and ask Uncle Vige Chief toe over.
Wei Yi tactfully took the initiative to find the old vige chief.
The three families had thought that MO Ruyue would definitely tell them everything, and they had already decided that they could only fight to the death. However, when they saw MO Ruyue dragging her child home, they all looked disdainful.
Wasnt she still a soft dough?
A woman without a man in charge was not good enough. She could not be tough.
The three families felt as if they had won the battle.
What they didnt know was that the old vige chief had gone to MO Ruyues house, and MO Ruyue was discussing the three families with the old vige chief.
These three families are not considered to be from our vige. In the early years, the elders of those three families were from the vige. Later on, they all went there, and they also went to the other viges. Now that they see that our vige is getting better and better, they want toe back. I thought that the vige needs to develop vigorously and increase the poption, so I agreed.
The old vige chief did not expect the three families to be so tasteless. Have their household registration records been forgotten?
Not yet. It just so happens that I havent been busy with the mountain opening these two days. I havent gone to look for County Magistrate Wu yet.
Because the mountain was not opened, the old vige chief was indeed especially busy these two days. He had to count the number of people, pay the peoples wages, and see if anything happened to them.
Theres no need for the household registration of these three families to fall into our West River Vige. Our West River Vige is now a harmonious vige. We dont need such rat sh*t toe in and stir things up.
I had the same intention. In the future, when I recruit people, I will definitely ask about their character first.
Seeing that the old vige chief was ming himself again, MO Ruyue said,
Uncle, youve done a good job.
You can find two people to be your helpers. You can decide who is suitable in the vige.
I remember that our vige stillcks a chief. Find someone to rece you as the vige chief. In the future, you can work together and you can rx a little.
The vige chief didnt understand what MO Ruyue meant. He thought that MO Ruyue had asked him to give up his position as vige chief.
As the 16th vige chief, he was busy every day. He still wanted to bring West River Vige to greater heights in his hands. Now that he was not allowed to be the vige chief, what else could he do?
The main reason was that he couldnt bear to part with this position!
MO Ruyue continued, He doesnt need to take care of such trivial matters. In the future, you can only let the vige chief take care of it and report to you.
Youre not young anymore, so I want you to rx a little.
It could also be considered as repaying the old vige chief for taking care of her family for the past two years.
This matter only needed to be reported to County Magistrate Wu and stamped.
The old vige chief finally understood.
This, this, this Im afraid I cant do it.
Besides, it had been a long time since the viges around them had a vige chief. He was really afraid that he would not be able to do well.
You can. If I say you can, then you can. When the timees, if you really have any problems that you cant solve, juste to me.
If it wasnt for the fact that the old vige chiefs education was limited and that he was old and wasnt suitable for other positions, she would have given him a better job.
At the moment, the position of vige chief was the most suitable.
When the old vige chief left MO Ruyues ce, his mood was high.
He did not expect that he could still be promoted at his age. He had to go to the ancestral hall to burn incense for the ancestor.
Tang Tang,e here. Tell me, what did you sprinkle on those three people just now?
Tang Tang saw that her mother was expressionless. She twisted her little fingers in fear and took small steps toward her.
The more expressionless her mother was, the angrier she was.
Mother, I was wrong. Please punish me!
Seeing that his mother was angry, Si Bao quickly ran to her and knelt down. He even pulled his sister along.
Tang Tang saw that her brother had already knelt down, so she obediently knelt down beside him. However, her little fingers were still twisting. At this moment, she was very flustered.
Mother, its my fault. It has nothing to do with Brother. Tang Tang stole a nce at MO Ruyue as she spoke..
Chapter 522 - 522: Handed Over to the Yamen
Chapter 522: Handed Over to the Yamen
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Lafu and the other dogs did not dare to breathe loudly when they saw their two little masters stance. However, they all ran in front of their two little masters and sat in a row to block them.
The dogs knew that they were disobeying their master, so they stole nces at their master from time to time.
They had been ordered not to bite because their master said that they had some kind of poison that could make people go crazy and infect people. If they couldnt remember to bite, their master wouldnt want them and they would be killed by others.
However, it was their fault for not protecting their little masters. They couldnt let their master me their little masters or let their little masters get beaten up.
The dogs were also a little scared when they did this, but they sat firmly in front of their little masters.
MO Ruyues anger dissipated when she saw the restless looks in the eyes of the dogs and children.
She reached out and stroked Lafus head.
You guys did well.
Although you were afraid, you still insisted on protecting your little masters.
Still not telling the truth?
MO Ruyue looked at Tang Tang.
Mother, Tang Tang was wrong. She should not have disobeyed Mother. Why are you disobedient? What did you do wrong?
I shouldnt have disobeyed Mother and secretly made truth powder. If someone with ulterior motives saw it, it would definitely cause big trouble and put me in danger.
Si Bao thought that this sister of his was getting harder and harder to take care of!
He watched and watched it every day, but she could actually secretly make some truth powder without him knowing?
As Tang Tang spoke, she raised her head and stole a nce at MO Ruyue. She then took two steps forward on her knees, pulled out the soft stool at her waist, and raised it above her head.
Mother, hit me!
Si Bao quickly followed suit. Mother, I didnt take good care of my sister. Im willing to take the punishment on her behalf.
Oh, you even know how to use a trick to hurt yourself.
However, this trick of hurting himself was used on her heart!
MO Ruyue didnt really want to punish them, but she couldnt let them off so easily.
She didnt know how to teach her children. Tang Tang should have been praised for developing the truth powder herself. She was simply a medical genius!
She was afraid that if she really punished the child, it would erase her medical talent. However, she could not really hit the child.
At this time, she really hoped that Granny Rong and the others woulde in. Because she wanted to talk about the truth powder, there were only the three of them in the room.
Maids!
Four people came in from outside the house. They were Granny Rong, Granny
Yan, Chun Hua and Qiu Shi.
The four of them were very worried that their young masters would be punished, but they did not dare toe in. When they heard Mo Ruyue calling for them, they did not care if they would be reprimanded or not, so they all came in.
Xia Yu and Dong Xue were a step slower and were blocked at the door.
The four of them saw the young miss and the young master kneeling in front of the princess, and the young miss holding the soft whip high above her head as if she was admitting her guilt. What had happened?
Usually, the princess doted on the young miss and the young master the most. The current state was definitely the young miss and the young masters fault.
The four of them knelt down without hesitation.
MO Ruyue pretended not to see the four of them. Bring me the familyw!
Granny Rong and the other three asked, Familyw?
Did their family have any family rules?
But if the Princess said there was, then there must be. She didnt know, but maybe the other three knew?
The four of them thought so.
Princess, we atone for our sins.
Granny Rong took the lead and said, Young Miss and Young Master are still young. They cant withstand the familyw. Please calm down, Princess!
When Granny Rong was apologizing, she even pulled Granny Yan and Chun Hua to her side.
Originally, the three of them had also decided to follow Granny Rongs plea.
They were all ves. If one of them was guilty, the others would not be able to escape. Moreover, the young master and young miss were bullied today. They were also guilty of not taking good care of them, especially Chun Hua.
Princess, if you want to punish, then punish this servant. It was this servant who did not take good care of young miss and young master, causing them to be bullied.
The young miss and the young master have tender skin. If they are hurt, the princess will be the one who will feel the pinch. Please calm down, Princess.
Chun Hua deliberately emphasized the words bullied. She meant that the young miss and the young master had been bullied by outsiders before. Now, she should beforting them instead of being punished. She didnt want to scare the young miss and the young master. She was afraid that the Princess would be angry after hearing her words, so she emphasized that it was her fault again, even if she was beaten up today.
Princess, please calm down!
Its all this servants fault. This servant is willing to ept punishment!
The four of them spoke in unison.
MO Ruyue realized that they still cared about the two children.
Young masters are young, insensible, and disobedient. As servants who take care of him, you really deserve to be punished!
Mother, Tang Tang really doesnt dare to do it anymore. Please dont punish the nanny and the others. It was Tang Tang who sent sister Chun Hua away, so she couldnt be by our side at the first moment.
Youve grown capable!
MO Ruyue was getting more and more worried. Originally, if the nanny and the others begged for mercy, she would be able to get out of this situation after enduring for a while. However, the more she said, the more ridiculous this little girls mistakes became. She even sent them away. If she really let her off easily, wouldnt this girl turn the world upside down in the future?
But she really couldnt bear to hit the child. How could she maintain her face? If she didnt hit the child, could she punish the child?
Im not leaving. Why are you chasing us away?
Was it that MO Ruyue?
Just because she was a princess now, she really thought she was a princess!
Is there any justice left?
When she was sleepy, she met someone who gave her a pillow!
MO Ruyue stood up and went out to see what was going on. She didnt even need to look to know that the three families must have been chased out of the vige by the old vige chief, but they were unwilling to leave.
When he passed by Granny Rong, he gestured to her to quickly pull the two children up. She felt very sorry for them.
Granny Rong was old and shrewd. She naturally knew what MO Ruyue meant by her actions. It was the heart of a parent.
She quickly ran over to help Tang Tang and Si Bao up.
The three families outside were still cursing. They couldnt stay in the vige anymore, so they had to say it out loud before they left.
As for the fact that MO Ruyue was a princess, in their eyes, she was definitely a fake princess.
If the Princess did not stay in the capital, she would still be staying in the broken countryside. Moreover, she was just a piece of paper to gain reputation. It was even possible that this identity was fabricated by herself.
After MO Ruyue came out, the three families saw that MO Ruyue was even more brazen. They almost pointed at her nose and scolded her.
Send them to the government office for punishment.
MO Ruyue threw a sentence at them and did not bother about them anymore. Those people were not worthy of her wasting her breath.
As for whether the three families whomitted crimes were beaten or beheaded, that was their own fate.
She felt that after she became a princess, she had always been kind, but these people thought she was weak and ipetent. As a result, these people did not understand the meaning behind her identity as a princess, so they dared to bully her child again.
She already had the status of a princess. If she didnt make use of it, she really didnt deserve this status!
However, she did not want Wei Yi and the others to directly execute these people. She was a princess, and even if she wanted to kill someone, she had to file a case. Otherwise, if someone with ill intentions found out, it would not be good if they said that she was using her power for personal gain. She could only send them to the government office to be judged.
Wei Yi led Wei Er to seal the mute acupoints of the three families and sent them to the government office.
The vigers thought that taking the three families away was just a formality, but the two guards did not seem to be joking. They were all anxiously guessing what would happen to the three families in the end.
At the same time, he also realized that Princess Ming Yues identity was very powerful..
Chapter 523 - 523: House Deed
Chapter 523: House Deed
ransuator: Dragon Boat I ranstatlon?????? tattor: uragon ????????? I ranstauon
At that moment, there were many people who knew that the more mischievous children in their families were all pulled by their ears and warned repeatedly that they must not provoke Princess Ming Yues children.
Due to the parents warnings, many children in the vige did not dare to y with Tang Tang and Si Bao anymore.
Tang Tang and Si Bao also knew that it was because they had beaten up the three brats that this series of things had happened. At first, they were a little unhappy.
MO Ruyue didnt do anything about it, leaving the situation to the children to resolve themselves.
She only told the children to do what they thought was right.
In the future, simr things would definitely happen. If she had to solve all the problems for the children every time, it would deprive them of their ability to think.
Sure enough, a few dayster, Tang Tang and Si Bao had fun with the vige children again.
The two of them were well-liked to begin with. They were well-behaved, cute, and sensible. If it wasnt for the brat deliberately finding fault with them, they would still be able to y with the two of them. After all, these two children were also the princess children. This rtionship was still very eye-catching.
They wouldnt remain silent if someone offended them too much. Now, they would even seek revenge for themselves.
MO Ruyue thought of Tang Tangs talent in medicine. She was both happy and troubled. She was happy that she could learn without a teacher, but she was troubled because she was too young. It would not be a good thing if she was targeted by someone with ill intentions.
After thinking about it, she still had to keep an eye on it. She called the two children over and carefully exined the matter to them.
MO Ruyue felt that it was better to let them go. Since Tang Tang liked it, she decided to spend an hour and a half every day to apany Tang Tang and Si Bao to do whatever they were interested in. It was better than having a child who was too curious and would regret it if something happened to her in private.
The two children were the happiest during this hour every day.
Thev could do what thev liked the most and be with their mother.
The dogs were inseparable from their little masters, including the two pregnant dogs.
Mother, do Xiao Hua and Xiao Cao want to take the medicine to protect the fetus? The two of them are a little silly. They dont know that they are going to be mothers and are still alive and kicking all day long.
Tang Tang was very worried about the two pregnant dogs.
Xiao Hua and Xiao Cao were stray dogs that Lafu and the others had picked up from somewhere. Tang Tang had named them because they were both ck and yellow colored dogs.
If theyre willing to eat, you can give them some.
MO Ruyue felt that the two dogs probably wouldnt take the medicine. After all, even people didnt like it, let alone dogs.
Even if they really ate it, it would be fine.
Tang Tang began her path of making medicine.
MO Ruyue went to take a look at Si Bao and found that his handwriting was much better than hers.
Mother, have I improved?
Si Bao asked expectantly.
Of course!
Our Si Bao can be a calligraphy master.
After an hour and a half, she helped the two children pack up and let them go out to y. After all, children could not lose their innocence.
MO Ruyue carefully hand-copied Tang Tangs doodling of the pharmaceutical process. There were already two copies on her small desk, and this was the third.
Si Baos words were also rolled up and ced in arge porcin bottle beside the bookshelf. These things were very precious and had to be preserved well.
Early in the morning, when the two babies turned five, Gu Ying came back alone.
The big group that followed him back was still behind. He had rushed back overnight just to make it in time for the babies birthday.
Uncle is back!
Tang Tang was happy that Gu Ying had returned.
GuYing stepped forward and picked up Si Bao and Tang Tang with each hand.
He deliberately rubbed the babies face with his stubble. He knew what to do. The babies skin was too tender. If he scratched it, MO Ruyue would be hurt, and he would feel sorry for her.
Did you miss Uncle?
A little, hehe.
Si Bao didnt say anything, but he didnt deny it.
Gu Ying was already very satisfied to see the two children like this. It was not like before. The two children would re at him when he came back, as if he had stolen their most beloved things.
Look at what Uncle has brought you.
Gu Ying was covered in dust and dirt, and it was too dirty to hold the two children. He put the children down and immediately went to get the birthday gifts that he had specially prepared for the two children.
Big brother is back!
Big brother!
Qin Qingyan and Qin Qingshuang hade to MO Ruyues ce early in the morning to help. They were going to celebrate the two little fellows birthday today.
The two of them were very happy to see Gu Ying when they came out of the ancestral hall.
Cockroach Qingshuang,e over and help me get the things.
As Gu Ying spoke, he looked around the courtyard and the door of the house, but he did not see MO Ruyue.
Sister-inw is in the kitchen, hehe.
Qin Qingshuang said cheekily and ran to get the things on the horse.
Gu Ying also smiled.
Hurry up and open it. Do you like it?
Tang Tang took the palm-sized thin brocade box from Gu Ying. It was very beautiful and she was looking forward to what was inside.
There was still ayer of brocade when she opened it. When she opened it again, Tang Tang was pleasantly surprised.
It was a set of gold needles and a set of silver needles made of pure gold.
Thank you, Uncle.
Tang Tang was overjoyed. She had always wanted a set of silver needles, and she didnt expect her uncle to get one for her. She really liked it!
Gu Ying, whose right side of his face was frozen, was stunned for a moment before he was pleasantly surprised. It wasnt easy!
As long as you like it.
Gu Ying then looked at Si Bao and gestured for him to open the box to see if he liked the gift.
Si Baos gift box was rtivelyrge. He carefully opened it. There was an inkstone, a piece of Hui ink, a set of five-colored ink, and a set of Xuan brushes. At a nce, it was obvious that there were writing and painting brushes.
Most importantly, these things couldnt be bought even with money. Some people even collected them.
Finally, Si Bao could not hold back his serious expression and revealed a cute smile.
Do you like it?
Gu Ying asked.
I like it. Thank you, Uncle.
Si Bao was a polite child.
Gu Ying turned his left face to Si Bao and pointed at his left cheek with his finger. His meaning was obvious.
Of course, Si Bao understood what Gu Ying meant, but how could he act like his sister? That would be too embarrassing!
However, Gu Ying did not seem to notice his dilemma. Aiya, I rushed back overnight. The horse almost vomited.
Si Bao listened to Gu Yings words and did not move, but there was a look of struggle on his face.
I was just afraid that this gift wouldnt be delivered in time.
Si Bao quickly gave Gu Ying a kiss, and his little face flushed red.
You only know how to bully my son and daughter the moment youe back!
When MO Ruyue heard that Gu Ying had returned, she came out of the kitchen and saw Gu Ying coaxing Si Bao to kiss him.
Mother, look at what Uncle gave me!
Tang Tang couldnt wait to show her mother her beloved golden silver needles.
MO Ruyue knew that Tang Tang had always wanted a set of silver needles, but she did not give it to Tang Tang because she was afraid that Tang Tang would be in danger if she held it at such a young age.
She went to look at Si Baos gift. This man was really thoughtful. He had delivered it to the childrens hearts.
Its not a loss to kiss each other.
Yes.
Yes.
This is for you.
Gu Ying took out something from his bosom and handed it to MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue took the stack of papers from Gu Ying. At first, she thought it was banknotes, but when she saw Gu Yings expectant eyes, she opened the stack of papers.
These are all deeds?
Even without Gu Yings reply, MO Ruyue saw the words on the contract.
There were a total of sixnd deeds, and they were all shops in the capital.
As far as she knew, the address on thend deed was the most prosperous area in the capital..
Chapter 524 - 524: I Want To Come Over To Warm Your Nest
Chapter 524: I Want To Come Over To Warm Your Nest
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
What do you mean?
MO Ruyue looked at Gu Ying, who was full of anticipation.
This is for you.
Coincidentally, Qin Qingfei came over with two red carps in her hands. She heard that her eldest brother had returned and had not seen him for quite a few days. She hurriedly ran in and heard the conversation between MO Ruyue
and Gu Ying the moment she entered.
You dare to give these things, but I dont dare to ept them.
It was true that they were a couple now, but the gift wasparable to a betrothal gift.
Gu Ying did not expect MO Ruyue to say that. Seeing that she was not joking, he said seriously, Whats there to be afraid of?
I said it was for you, so its for you.
Even if you dont need to discuss this with Qingfei, dont you need to discuss it with Qing Er?
Qin Qingfei stood at the side and heard that she was involved. She quickly reduced her presence and carried the two fish into the kitchen.
Gu Ying understood what MO Ruyue meant. She probably thought that these were all properties of the Xue Family.
Gu Ying smiled.
Are you stupid? l i m giving it to you.
Dont worry, I earned these things myself. It has nothing to do with the Xue family.
Moreover, you dont have to go to the capital to manage it. Those shopkeepers wille over every month to check with you.
Since Gu Ying had said so, it must be true. Seeing Gu Yings firm attitude, MO Ruyue did not decline.
Dont regret it if I ept it. Its impossible to take it back.
I wont regret it!
From now on, what is mine is all yours.
Do you like it?
Gu Ying looked at the lively woman in front of him with gentle eyes. She was not pretentious and had a kind and beautiful heart. He could not get enough of her.
Of course I like it. Who doesnt love money? Only a fool like you would give it away.
MO Ruyue said as she carefully folded the six pieces of contract paper and tucked them into her bosom.
She had a lot of business with Qin Rouwan and Immortal Crane Restaurant, so she wasnt short of money. She would keep these six shops for the time being and leave them for the children in the future.
Im going to make delicious food for the children. You can y with them for a while.
Thank you for your gift.
Gu Ying looked at MO Ruyue. Was there nothing else she could say?
For example, give him a wooden p.
MO Ruyue understood what Gu Ying meant and pointed at her own face.
Ill reward you with a wooden p.
Gu Ying wanted to, but he didnt dare to. The children were watching.
Hahaha! Hey, right, didnt I ask you to bring me some gadgets from the capital?
You came back alone and didnt bring anything?
Yes, but they are still behind us. They will probably arrive tomorrow.
Gu Yings tone was like that of a bullied wife.
Alright, then hurry up and wash up and change your clothes. Its the babies birthdays.
What else could Gu Ying do? Of course, he went to wash up obediently.
On the way back to his room, he despised himself. Why was he so cowardly?
What could she do? She had allowed it anyway. It was toote to regret it now. The more Gu Ying thought about it, the more he beat his chest and stamped his feet.
When the food was almost ready, many people came to the house.
Doctor Qin, Qin Rouwan, Hua Mingliang, Xue Qing, and County Magistrate Wu were all here.
MO Ruyue was not the one who had announced this matter, but now that they knew about it, they came together.
They were guests, and they had a good rtionship with MO Ruyue. MO Ruyue was quite happy that they were here as guests, especially the two birthday kids. The two of them were already a little tired of receiving gifts, so they had to ask
Chun Hua and Xia Yu to help them.
Si Bao and Tang Tang each gave their own gifts.
Even Lafu and the other dogs went to the wild to pick a lot of blooming dandelions and gave them to the two little birthday girls.
Not to be outdone, Lu caught two birds and gave them to Si Bao and Tang
Tang.
Therefore, the news of Lus mutation became a hot topic.
It couldnt be helped. It had grown up with the dogs since it was young. Although it was a deer, it had long integrated into the lives of the dogs, other than not eating meat.
At the dining table, the guests and guests were enjoying themselves. Next was the cake. Qin Rouwan had already nned to open a branch in the capital, but she didnt have enough manpower right now, so she was training them.
MO Ruyue was having a private conversation with Qin Rouwan, Xue Qing, and Qin Qingfei. A few young and old men were chatting away in the courtyard when someone else came to the house It was Boss Yu, who had been pursuing Qin Rouwan.
Its my fault for beingte. I didnt know in advance, so please dont me me.
Come here, Tang Tang and Si Bao. This is a little gift from Uncle. I wish the two little birthday stars a happy birthday!
Boss Yu took out two brocade boxes of simr size and gave them to Si Bao and Tang Tang.
Si Bao and Tang Tang turned around and nced at MO Ruyue. Seeing her nod to signal them to ept the gifts, the two children quickly epted the gifts with both hands and thanked him politely.
Everyone had to go home after dinner. Hua Mingliang had nned to stay in West River Vige for two days, but he saw that both MO Ruyues and Qins houses were overcrowded.
Xiao Yue, when will the inn in your vige bepleted?
Also, you have to inform me when your princess manor is built. I will definitelye over to warm your nest!
When the time came, the princesss manor would be so big that there would definitely be a room for him to stay in. At most, he would drag Old Qin along. That girls master had to be filial, right?
Hehe, it was a great honor to have a princess niece!
Even if I forget someone, I wont forget you. Dont worry.
When the timees, everyone wille and warm up my house.
Hahaha, okay, okay, okay. Dont find it annoying when the timees.
No, no.
Some people came and left in a lively manner.
Qin Haoyan stayed behind. He wanted to discuss knowledge with Qin Qingyan. Besides, the top scorer of this years new subject, no, the second-ce scorer of the new subject, was right next to him. If one didnt understand, one could ask him. Gu Ying would definitely answer.
Of course, Qin Rouwan wouldnt reject her sons studious attitude. She would just stay in the same room as Qin Qingyan.
Qin Haoyu also stayed behind desperately.
I want to live in the same room as Si Bao!
There must be a lot of things that Si Bao doesnt understand. I can teach him.
Everyone did not expose him. Although this child was usually more temperamental, he was much better now. The most important thing was that he was especially sensible here.
The next day, Gu Yings two students and several carriages arrived. West River Vige was bustling again.
Seeing these people, Gu Ying recalled what MO Ruyue had told him in her letter about how the vige was going to develop.
These small toys were the main driving force for development.
When he came back yesterday, he saw many people digging at the foot of the mountain outside West River Vige. He guessed that it might have something to do with MO Ruyue.
Because she was in a hurry toe back, she didnt go over to see what was going on. She hadnt gone to see it today, but these people had returned.
Some of those small toys needed to be handled gently, so Gu Ying personally went to unload them.
The vigers saw that there were so many young masters of different colors who had suddenly arrived in the vige. Some were dressed in linen clothes, and some were dressed in brocade clothes. These people were about to attend Gu Yings Civil and Military Academy.
The first impression the students had when they saw West River Vige: This ce is so broken..
Chapter 525 - 525: Strong Detoxification Pill
Chapter 525: Strong Detoxification Pill
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
They didnt expect West River Vige to be so shabby. They had thought that this ce had been approved by the Emperor and had been specially established by Gu Ying as a Civil and Military Academy. Even if it wasnt a prosperous ce, it shouldnt be a shabby small mountain vige at the foot of the mountain!
This vige didnt even have a proper official road, and they couldnt enter or leave as they pleased even if it rained heavily. Their feet would definitely be covered in mud.
The vigers looked at them as if they were monkeys. Although they did not point at them, it was ufortable to look at them.
Many people had already begun to give up. They wondered if such an academy could let them learn well.
To think that their parents had assured them that Gu Ying was a good person. He was originally the top schr, but for various reasons, he gave up his position and chose to return to the vige to establish the Civil and Martial Arts College. He wanted to study well with this kind of schr. However, under the conditions of studying well, the environment should befortable, right? Although thendscape here was passable, the important thing was, was there anywhere in the vige that they could live?
Could it be that they were going to stay in the vigers houses?
Gu Ying and MO Ruyue had seen the students reactions. They were just like her apprentices.
These people were things that Gu Ying had to settle himself. If she could help, Gu Ying would definitely ask her for help. She would not take the initiative to take care of them. She still had a bunch of female students to take care of.
If it werent for Granny Rong and Granny Yan helping her share the burden, she would have been in even more trouble.
Those female doctors were going back in a few days, so she could rx a lot.
The other female students were also fortunate to have been taught by Granny Rong and Granny Yan, so they were much more polite than before.
MO Ruyue felt that she had to treat Granny Rong and Granny Yan better. They would definitely do their best in the future.
There were two students wearing coarse clothes. When they saw Gu Ying and the others unloading the things, they went forward to help. They were very obedient and did not need to be called.
The other students were a little disgusted. Those things were dusty and dirty. They were quite tired after traveling for a few days and only wanted to rest. However, when they saw the two students trying to curry favor with them, if they did not go, they would definitely be hated or disliked by the teachers. A few students were a little dissatisfied with the two students.
In the end, all the students reluctantly or willingly stepped forward to help. Soon, all the things on the four carriages were unloaded. As soon as the four carriages made room, another group of carriages arrived. Those carriages were more luxurious. One look and one could tell that they belonged to rich families. The leader was actually wearing a eunuchs uniform.
MO Ruyue was very familiar with this eunuch. This eunuch hade to her vige before.
The eunuch also saw MO Ruyue in the crowd. He hurriedly got off the carriage and walked toward her with a smile. He stopped a few steps away from her and bowed respectfully to MO Ruyue. This servant greets Princess Ming Yue!
Eunuch, get up. What are you doing?
MO Ruyue nced at Gu Ying as she asked the eunuch. The eunuchs carriage must have followed his carriage here.
Gu Ying shook his head, indicating that he didnt know.
The eunuch would not let MO Ruyue guess, and he did not dare to either. He directly stated his intention.
The Emperor said that these are some of the capitalstest gadgets, sent to the Princess to y with to relieve her boredom.
After the eunuch finished speaking, he swung his horsetail whisk behind him and said to the guards beside the carriage, Unload the carriage quickly.
A few guards hurriedly stepped forward to unload the things on the carriage. Their movements were gentle but not slow.
MO Ruyue nced at Gu Ying again. Gu Ying shook his head and cursed in his heart. The Emperor was too shameless. He must have sent someone to spy on him. That was how he knew what MO Ruyue wanted and sent it back with him.
He sent four carriages, and the Emperor also sent four carriages. It seemed that the quality of the things he sent should be better than the ones he sent. This Ji Hong!
The eunuch saw the guards unloading the things and quickly smiled at MO Ruyue to make a good impression.
Princess Ming Yue has many things in here that the Emperor personally picked. Consort Li and Empress Dowager also picked many of them.
Empress Dowager and Consort Li miss you very much.
This wasnt just what Empress Dowager and Consort Li wanted. Actually, the Emperor also wanted it, but he didnt say it out loud. As servants, they all saw it.
They didnt know that when the Princess asked Gu Ying to collect those little things in the capital, the Emperor immediately ordered people to collect better ones. Adding the reputation of Empress Dowager and the Consort Li, this was all for the sake of Princess Ming Yues reputation.
It could be seen that the Emperor had really put in a lot of effort for Princess Ming Yue.
I really have to thank the Emperor, Empress Dowager, and Consort Li.
After you go back, please thank them for me personally. I am busy now and I cant visit them. When I have time, I will definitely visit them.
Ai, when this servant returns to the pce, this servant will definitely pass on the Princesss words to the Emperor, Empress Dowager and Consort Li without missing a single word.
Granny Rong, please bring a cup of tea and snacks for the eunuch.
Granny Yan,e with me. Prepare some small things for the eunuch to bring back to the Empress Dowager and Consort Li.
Please wait a moment, Eunuch, MO Ruyue said to the eunuch.
Princess, this is what this servant should do.
MO Ruyue didnt have much to give to the nobles in the pce. She only had some local specialties, such as honey produced by her family.
She left a mark on the paper seal on the honey and asked her father-inw to bring another letter to the Emperor, Consort Li, and the others. She asked them to take a look when they opened the letter. If there were any traces of it being touched, it must have been tampered with.
She didnt want to get involved in the royal familys struggles without getting any benefits or praise. She might even lose her head.
Among these things, there were also a few newly developed powerful detoxification pills.
Logically speaking, she couldnt give medicine to the pce, but MO Ruyue only had these things.
She couldnt possibly send some chickens and ducks that only knew how to poop.
Granny Rong and the eunuch knew each other. Hearing Granny Rong describe the life here, the eunuch yearned for it and could only be envious.
The things that MO Ruyue and Granny Yan had prepared for the pce were all ready. After loading the carriage, the eunuch took his leave.
When he passed by the foot of the mountain outside West River Vige, he saw many people standing there digging stones. The eunuch did not ask what they were doing, as he was not interested in this.
When he passed by the princesss manor, he went down to ask Meng Xun when it would bepleted.
Meng Xun had seen the royal carriage enter West River Vige before, so he knew more about MO Ruyues status in the royal family. She was indeed more favored than a princess.
Now that the eunuch had specificallye to ask him, he did not hide anything.
Replying to Eunuch Gong, it will bepleted in three to five days.
This lowly official has been monitoring the progress of the princesss manor day and night. I dare not make the slightest mistake.
When the eunuch heard this, he still said to Meng Xun with a straight face, There cant be any mistakes in the Princesss manor. Otherwise, all of you will bring your heads to see him. This is the Emperors intention.
At this moment, the eunuch did not have the slightest bit of a good expression in front of MO Ruyue.
The eunuch went into the princesss manor and took a look with his own eyes. He was quite satisfied. He was in a hurry to return to the pce to report and would not stay any longer. He once again instructed Meng Xun and sat on the carriage back to the capital.
After his father-inw left, Meng Xun gave several orders to the construction teams. They were just a bit away from thest bit of work. They must not make any mistakes. Otherwise, it was needless to say what would happen to them..
Chapter 526 - 526: Don ‘t Dirty Your Eyes
Chapter 526: Don t Dirty Your Eyes
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gu Ying looked at the little things the Emperor had sent over fiercely. He was a
little angry andpletely lost out to the things he had brought back.
What happened to you?
No, I havent.
Didnt you say that you wanted these things back to set up a stall?
Why did you put it in the storeroom?
Moreover, she had let him go first. She probably wanted to use the stalls that the Emperor had given her. How could he not be jealous?
She couldnt say it out loud even if she was jealous.
Because its not the time to set up a stall yet. These things will be of the greatest use when they are put out on the day they are used. MO Ruyue did not notice Gu Yings abnormality.
Gu Ying felt much better after hearing MO Ruyues exnation.
By the way, why are there so many people digging at the foot of the mountain outside the vige?
What are you doing?
I wont tell you yet. Youll know when its done over there.
Hurry up and arrange for your students. Theyre tired from the journey. Some of them are young masters of wealthy families. Theyre willing to send them over. However, its good to gain experience.
Good luck!
Those people had to be arranged quickly. Fortunately, the Civil and Martial
Arts Institute had beenpleted for some time and could be used for living.
Gu Ying asked the students to take their luggage and brought them to the academy. However, he was stopped by MO Ruyue again.
Im sorry, I just remembered that there are six people in charge of digging the mountain. Because the inn in the vige hasnt been built yet, they have been staying at your academy.
If you students cant stay, I will ask Wei Yi and the others to move their things to the inn in the vige.
Yes.
These people have to be disciplined by me since they came here. They think that they can be served at home like Eldest Young Master. Dont even think about it.
It was even more impossible to let each person stay in one room.
Its okay. Dont worry about this. Im back. Ill do whatever I can.
Of course, MO Ruyue wouldnt be so free as to care about the Civil and Martial Arts Academy. She didnt even want to care about her own apprentice.
Now that these young masters hade to the vige, the people from the medical school had seen them. Many heads were peeking out of the windows on the second floor.
It seemed that these people had not been taught enough by Granny Rong.
Granny Rong, take a look.
Granny Rong followed MO Ruyues hand and looked toward the hospital. She wanted to fly into a rage when she saw MO Ruyue, but MO Ruyue pulled her back.
Dont go in a hurry. You have to secretly catch them.
Princess, good idea.
Granny Rong sneaked over to the medical school from the other side.
MO Ruyue chuckled. She could not be med for being a busybody. This era was harsh on women. If anything happened to these female students, it would be her responsibility.
She could not let those girls be harmed by the exaggerated appearance of this world.
After all, he was someone from her hospital and could be considered her disciple.
MO Ruyue did not care how Granny Rong would deal with the restless female students at the hospital. She realized that Tang Tang and Si Bao had not been seen for a long time. She did not know where they had gone to y, nor did she see the dogs and Xia Yu and Dong Xue.
She was sure that she was with the two children, so he felt a little relieved.
Do you know where Wei Er went?
Wei Yi quickly replied, He followed Young Master and Young Miss. They seemed to have gone out. I will go and see where they went.
MO Ruyue nodded and walked out of the courtyard. She saw Wei Er following behind Si Bao and Tang Tang at the foot of the mountain. He was carrying a big tree on his shoulder.
Xia Yu and Dong Xue followed Si Bao and Tang Tang closely. They were holding baskets of vegetables that seemed to contain a lot of wild vegetables.
Needless to say, they had juste down from the mountain.
Mother, mother, I picked mushrooms, winter bamboo shoots, and some wild vegetables. Lets eat cold wild vegetables, braised rabbit meat with winter bamboo shoots, and make mushroom soup, okay?
Alright, our Tang Tang went up the mountain to painstakingly pick it. It must taste delicious.
What was this tree for?
Without even asking, she knew that the two little fellows were the ones who had asked the man to chop down the thick tree.
Didnt Uncle give me gold and silver needles?
I want to be a wooden person and practice acupuncture. MO Ruyue rubbed Tang Tangs head.
Silly Ya Ya, youre a block of wood. Can you even move it?
Next time, if she wanted something, she would tell her mother. Mother wouldnt, but Grandma Zhou would.
MO Ruyue could not bear to let her daughters tender hands prick the wood with the gold and silver needles. If the wood did not break, her own hands would definitely break.
That night, she went to find Aunt Zhou and Qin Qingshuang and asked them to help make a doll for Tang Tang. She didnt need facial features, just a human figure. She would draw the acupoint map.
Aunt Zhou and Qin Qingshuang didnt disagree. They asked Tang Tang what size she wanted and what conditions she had. After asking for a while, they started to cook. Because they had to be quick, the two of them worked together for an entire day.
MO Ruyue had given him the design drawing, and even the size of the various parts had been calcted and marked. Therefore, apart from theck of facial features, this doll was basically a miniature version of a real person.
Considering that Tang Tang was still a child, they didnt make it too big. It was two feet long, enough for Tang Tang to learn the acupoints.
As expected, little girls had no resistance to dolls. Qin Qingshuang made one for herself.
Tang Tang couldnt put this doll down. She even hugged it to sleep.
MO Ruyue would check the mannequins every night to see if there were any gold and silver needles left on them. She didnt want the child to be pricked at night.
MO Ruyue remembered that she had recruited a teacher for Gu Ying, but she had not told Gu Ying yet. This matter could not be dyed. Otherwise, wouldnt the old vige chiefs son say that she was fooling people?
She didnt see Gu Ying when she arrived at the Qin familys house next door. Gu Ying was busy at the academy at the moment. She might as well go over and see how the scale was. Perhaps she could help and give some advice or something.
Gu Ying had also brought back four gentlemen.
They were all his old friends and ssmates, and two of them were Mr. Wu
from the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency.
Gu Ying was discussing the future procedure with the four teachers when he saw MO Ruyue.
These four gentlemen had a good rtionship with Gu Ying. They knew that Gu Ying liked MO Ruyue, so they winked at him when they saw MO Ruyue.
Gu Ying didnt have time to bother with them. He left the room. Why are you here? You havent even cleaned up yet. Dont dirty your eyes.
I came to talk to you about serious matters. I mentioned to Uncle Vige Chief before that youck a teacher here. Uncle Vige Chiefs son is a teacher in town. The academy there has not been doing well for the past two years. I want him toe back to your side.
Your Civil and Martial Arts Academy cant just ept adults, right? Youll definitely ept the younger ones as well. When the timees, youll need the teacher to teach them, so I took the initiative to ept the son of the vige chief for you.
I forgot to ask for your opinion.
Alright, its best that he cane.
You didnt act on your own. I cant thank you enough.
Not to mention that he was rmended by MO Ruyue, he was also willing to ept the son of the old vige chief..
Chapter 527 - 527: Fire
Chapter 527: Fire
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
I know. Ill go to Uncle Vige Chiefs house when I return to the vigeter.
Since they had agreed on important matters, MO Ruyue didnt n to stay any longer. She would talk about other things when she got home.
Gu Ying caught up to them not long after they left.
You dont need to worry about the academy anymore. Youre going home
Ive already instructed those people what to do. Theyre adults themselves. If they cant even do this well, theres still Sir.
After returning to the vige, MO Ruyue recalled that she had asked the old vige chief to rmend someone to take over his position as vige chief. It had been two to three days since he became the vige chief, but the old vige chief had note to tell her. He was probably too embarrassed.
MO Ruyue also told Gu Ying that she wanted the old vige chief to be the chief of the vige and that she wanted to promote another vige chief.
Their vige was getting bigger and bigger. MO Ruyue felt that it was possible that they would merge the neighboring vige into West River Vige soon.
Gu Ying felt that MO Ruyue was very thoughtful. Indeed, the old vige chief was not young anymore and should not be overworked. Giving him the position of a vige chief would preserve his previous identity and allow him to enjoy his old age.
He went home and took some snacks suitable for the elderly, then went to the vige chiefs house with MO Ruyue.
The old vige chief and his wife saw MO Ruyue and Gu Yings warm wee, and even their sons face was full of smiles.
In the two days he had been back, he had heard from his parents how good MO
Ruyue and Gu Ying were. He naturally had to befriend such people.
Putting everything else aside, he had to thank her for taking care of his parents.
The vige chiefs son first greeted MO Ruyue, then bowed to Gu Ying and called himself a student. Although Gu Ying was younger than him, he was ranked second, and he was just a small schr.
As the saying goes, attitude determines everything. MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were quite satisfied with his attitude. The old vige chiefs son must have a simr personality to him. As expected, after a conversation, both parties were very satisfied.
Uncle, havent you found someone suitable to take your ce these past few days?
Yes, I do. I just feel that I cant do a good job as a chief.
Because of this, the old vige chief had been vexed for the past two days.
Theres nothing that I cant do well. Its the same as when you were the vige chief. Moreover, its much easier than when you were the vige chief.
If you dont have a suitable candidate, Ill choose one myself. When the timees, our vige will not be led well. You cant me me.
I think the men from Cui Huas family are not bad.
How can Cui Huas family do that? He cant even manage himself well, so how can he manage the vige?
Between Tie Zhu and Dazhu, lees see whos willing.
I watched those two children grow up. They are young in terms of character and are really more suitable to be the vige chief than an old man like me.
That man from the Cui Hua family is not good enough.
MO Ruyue had deliberately said this so that the old vige chief would have no choice but to reveal the candidate he had in mind.
The old vige chief was really afraid that MO Ruyue would randomly pick someone who was not suitable to manage the vige. If the management of the vige turned into a mess, he would be even more vexed.
Why didnt you say so earlier?
Then lets go and ask for their opinions now. This matter cant be dyed.
Now that they had said so much, everyone felt that it was time to look for the two people who were mentioned.
What is it?
I cant do this, I cant!
When Wang Dazhu heard the old vige chiefs words, he stood up in shock and waved his hands repeatedly.
Putting aside whether he was suitable or not, he still had to take care of his daughter and son every day. How could he have the time to care about these things in the vige? It was fine if he helped out normally, but he definitely did not have the time to worry about it every day. Then, his wife would be left alone at home. She would be exhausted.
At this moment, he could not remember the servant at home at all.
Hence, everyone ran to Wang Tiezhus house.
After Wang Tiezhu heard this, his eyes widened as he looked at Wang Dazhu.
Isnt my brother a better candidate than me?
Its not my turn.
The few of themughed when they heard Wang Tiezhus words. These two brothers were indeed brothers.
In the end, everyone voted to make Wang Tiezhu the new vige chief of West River Vige. The old vige chief was promoted to the chief of the vige. On the same day, Gu Ying apanied the old vige chief and the others to the county town to find County Magistrate Wu. He re-established the identity documents for the old vige chief and Wang Tiezhu and stamped them.
To the old vige chief and Wang Tiezhu, both of them had been promoted and made a fortune. This was to treat the vigers to a meal.
MO Ruyue had single-handedly made this happen. She had decided to hold a banquet for the entire vige at the new inn in the vige, and she would pay for it.
The old Vige Chief and Wang Tiezhu disagreed, but they could not persuade MO Ruyue.
The two of you just need to develop our West River Vige well in the future.
Just treat it as a celebration for the opening of this inn!
This time, it was MO Ruyue who sent someone to the old vige chiefs house to get a gong. After striking the gong, she announced the promotion of the old vige chief and Wang Tiezhu and invited the entire vige to a banquet.
It was another day of revelry in West River Vige.
That night, something happened at the academy.
Meng Xun had sent someone to inform Gu Ying and MO Ruyue of this matter.
MO Ruyue had wanted to follow him to see the situation, but Gu Ying did not allow her to follow. He could settle it himself.
Gu Ying did not even need to go to the scene to know why those people were causing a ruckus. It was probably because they looked down on their vige.
Today, he had to let those people see what it meant to be better than others.
Gu Ying hurried to the academy outside the vige. As soon as he entered the courtyard, he heard the noise from the dormitory.
Hearing the arrogant and despotic voice, he knew that it was those rich kids who were causing trouble.
He really couldnt understand. Those ministers were quite capable in the court, but they had to throw their useless son to him and ask him to help educate him?
He had rejected them with all his might, but he had shamelessly gone to the emperor to speak up. Otherwise, he would definitely not ept such a person. He was simply a rat sh*t stirring up sh*t.
They had only been here for less than a day. and they were already causing trouble.
He could have chatted with MO Ruyue at home and looked at the moon, but now all of that was ruined by these bastards.
Gu Ying was furious when he thought about how they had ruined his beautiful leisure time.
Yours Truly has taken a fancy to this ce today. All of you, get out of here.
Do you bumpkins deserve to live with Yours Truly?
Gu Ying followed the voice and found the dormitory that was shouting the loudest. There were many people at the door of that dormitory. There were two students with bruises and swollen faces closest to the door. Moreover, those two students were his favorite.
These two students were called Gao Ji and Zhuo Qing. They were the first two students to help him unload the things from the carriage.
At this moment, the person called Xiong Qiu in the room was the bastard son of the capitals third-grade Great Xiong family.
Lord Xiong only had this one bastard son and no legitimate son, so he was raised as a legitimate son. However, he only received a low-quality education in terms of material education, which was really in line with a bastard son.
Xiong Qiu was used to being arrogant and bossy since he was young. He often caused trouble by teasing cats and dogs in Beijing, and no one at home could control him.
Lord Xiong had heard from someone that Gu Ying was a capable person who would definitely be able to teach many outstanding talents, so he had stuffed his uncontroble son into his ce.
This Bear Hill was truly a bear ball, causing trouble for him as soon as he arrived..
Chapter 528 - 528: Write the School Rules a Hundred Times
Chapter 528: Write the School Rules a Hundred Times
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Its not impossible for the two of you to stay with me. From now on, you can be my attendants.
Xiong Qiu sat on a chair in the room, his legs crossed in a sloppy manner. His eyes were disdainful as he gave instructions to Gao Ji and Zhuo Qing at the door.
Isnt it best to give you two servant girls to serve you?
The few teachers also noticed that Gu Ying hade and heaved a sigh of relief. Gu Ying was probably the only one who could deal with the bearman in the room.
They did not have any status and did not dare to discipline Xiong Qiu. The few of them had already said it out loud, but it was useless. They could not really make a move on that person.
Heh, you guys really understand me, but can you get a servant girl?
If you can really get me two maids, let alone live with me, its not impossible to even let the maids serve you.
After Xiong Qiu finished speaking, he felt that something was wrong. It was as if there was an additional person at the door. The voice of the person who spoke did not sound like Gao Ji or Zhuo Qing, nor did it sound like the other teachers and students.
He couldnt help but look up at the door. When he saw who it was, his heart skipped a beat!
But who was he?
Since he had bumped into him, he would give it his all. Could Gu Ying beat him up?
He really didnt believe it.
Does your father know that youre so unreasonable?
Xiong Qiu saw that Gu Ying was expressionless and his tone did not seem like he was about to fly into a rage, so he was more certain in his heart.
He knew it. Even though Gu Ying was ranked second in the examination, he did not be an official. It was said that he had even fallen ill on the battlefield. He was just a cripple. That was why he wanted to open some Civil and Martial Arts College to decorate himself.
However, his old man had listened to someone and actually believed him. He said that the second ce would definitely teach a promising person and forcefully pushed him over. Even his aunts pleading was useless.
Looking at the famous Gu Ying, he still couldnt get tough in front of him.
I
You were the one who beat up Gao Ji and Zhuo Qing.
Xiong Qiu saw that Gu Ying had already guessed it, so he did not hide it. He had never denied anything he had done.
Yes.
What can you do to me?
Come out.
It was fine as long as he admitted it. Even if he did not admit it, he had a way.
Xiong Qiu did not move or speak at all. He just looked at Gu Ying. His meaning was very obvious. This young master will not go out.
Ill give you one more chance.
With so many people watching, Xiong Qiu still did not go out in the end. He did not need that opportunity. He did not believe that Gu Ying would really dare to do anything to him.
If he really went out after hearing Gu Yings words today, where would he put his face?
If this news were to spread back to the capital, he would definitely beughed at to death!
Seeing that Xiong Qiu was not moving at all, Gu Ying could not be bothered to waste any more time with him. He directly went in, picked him up from the chair, and threw him out of the door.
The few people at the door were almost hit by Xiong Qiu, who suddenly flew out. Fortunately, they dodged quickly.
Xiong Qiu was knocked unconscious from the fall. He could not believe that he had really been thrown out by Gu Ying.
He was lying on the ground, his face burning with pain. He did not dare to raise his head. Those people must beughing at him.
He did not get up, but Gu Ying could not let him continue to lie on the ground and pretend to be dead. He walked over and picked him up again.
You, you, you
Gu Ying punched him in the face, cutting off his words.
Pfft-
Xiong Qiu felt like his teeth were about to fall out.
Although you can be considered a tyrant in the capital, your father isnt that stupid and ipetent. I dont understand why your father raised such a reckless son like you.
Stand properly!
Gu Ying let go of his hand to let him stand properly. When he let go, Xiong Qiu almost fell down again. Xiong Qiu, who had been thrown out and punched by Gu Ying, was a little afraid now.
He didnt expect this person with a hidden illness to be so skilled.
At this moment, he couldnt care less about beingughed at by others. He could only stand obediently. This person really dared to be ruthless to him.
When his father sent him here, he had promised Gu Ying that he would be beaten and scolded as long as he was disobedient. He had thought that Gu Ying would take more care of him for his fathers sake, but he did not expect Gu Ying to be beaten up on the first day.
If you disrespect Teacher, you will copy the academy rules a hundred times.
If you dont want to live with them, then you can go to another student dormitory.
By the way, you have to double their medical fees.
Sir, I can talk about the medical fees and the dormitory, but copying the school rules a hundred times, isnt that killing me?
Gu Ying did not even think of answering his question.
If you dont do anything I say here, then pack up and get lost!
Xiong Qiu did not dare to make a sound. Although he really wanted to return to the capital, he definitely did not want to be chased away. That would not only embarrass his father, but also him.
Yes, Sir.
Xiong Qiu answered weakly.
Sir, I live here. I was just joking with Gao Ji and Zhuo Qing before. We were just sparring. It was my careless actions that identally injured them.
Dont worry, sir. Ill definitely pay for the medicine.
Gu Ying looked at Xiong Qiu, who was quite flexible.
He wanted to see if he was really flexible, or if he was just giving him orders on the surface.
Since youvee to my Civil and Martial Arts Academy, you have to do
everything yourself. I just heard that you asked them to serve you and even find you two girls, is that right?
No, no, Sir, you must have heard wrongly. I misspoke.
How could Xiong Qiu dare to admit it now? He would not admit it even if he was beaten to death.
His intuition told him that if he admitted it, it would definitely not be a good thing.
Didnt you want Gao Ji and Zhuo Qing to be your followers?
Gu Ying did not notice Xiong Qius nervousness.
No, no, Im just joking. From now on, were ssmates. We eat, drink, and live together. Were like brothers. How can I let them be my followers?
As Xiong Qiu spoke, he even gave Gao Ji and Zhuo Qing a meaningful nce.
Isnt that right, Brother Gao and Brother Zhuo?
Gao Ji and Zhuo Qing did not dare to provoke Xiong Qiu. Their family was poor, and they had power and status in Xiong Qius family. They would stay as far away from him as possible. Now that he had given them a way out, they could not really fight him to the death. After all, everyone had to be together in the future.
Both of them nodded at Gu Ying. They were just fooling around with Xiong Qiu.
Joking?
Do you think this is your own home?
Have you all forgotten what you are here for?
How could he not know what Gao Ji and Zhuo Qing were concerned about? It was precisely because he knew that he was even angrier.
If they were poor, they would have no future.
You guys also copy the academy rules a hundred times!
Gao Ji and Zhuo Qing did not expect that they would have to copy it, but they did not dare to refute and could only copy it.
Yes, Sir.
Gu Ying looked at the crowd of onlookers. His expression was very ugly.
Everyone who came to watch the fun, copy the academy rules a hundred times!
The surrounding students didnt think that this was their business. What did this have to do with them?
Sir, I just came over..
Chapter 529 - 529: Reforge
Chapter 529: Reforge
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Add it ten times.
Gu Ying did not want to listen to their exnation. If these people who came to watch had gone to him earlier, Gao Ji and Zhuo Qing would not have been beaten up like this.
As students of the same academy, we cant just stand by and watch the show.
With your mentality, its fine if you dont study!
This time, no one dared to refute or make a sound. Moreover, the person who stood out was added ten times. The others thought that they would only be added a hundred times. Fortunately, they did not add ten more times.
You have to hand it in five days. If you cant hand it in, you have to do it ten more times!
Gu Ying was watching the show because they were too free. Since they were so free, they might as well write more, read more books, and be more sensible.
Now, go wash up and rest early. ss starts tomorrow morning. If you dont keep to the time, I dont think you want to know the consequences.
After Gu Ying said this, he let the few gentlemen follow him to the meeting room.
Other than the vige chiefs son, the other four teachers were all here.
As teachers, you saw the students causing trouble and didnt send anyone to call me. You didnt manage them well. You have failed your duty today. The four gentlemen were ashamed by Gu Yings words, especially the two Mr.wu.
They did not stop the students before they made their move.
Since youvee to my academy, you have to abide by my rules. No matter what kind of rtionship you have with the outside world, even if a princees to my academy one day, you have to abide by the rules of my academy.
As teachers, how can you be controlled by the students?
Hearing Gu Yings words, the teachers nodded in agreement, feeling even more ashamed.
Principal, what are the rules of our academy?
I havent written it yet, Gu Ying said naturally. Why dont you let me do it for you
Dont fight with each other, dont make trouble, dont stand by and watch the show. Students have to be united when they encounter something.
They have to wake up at 5 am and sleep at 10 pm every day!
Gu Ying thought of the students performance just now and said a total of 108 things.
If there are no students whoe to you to ask for the rules, then you wont give it to them.
When the teachers thought of how Gu Ying had asked the students to copy the academy rules a hundred times within five days, they all learned a little about how he taught disobedient students. If anyone disobeys, just deal with them.
You guys rest early too.
It was gettingte, so Gu Ying went back after saying that.
The students were already shocked by Gu Yings thunderous methods. Each and every one of them was as obedient as quails. They obediently made their beds and went to bed after washing up.
Gu Ying didnt expect MO Ruyue to still be waiting for him when he returned.
However, he really liked the feeling of having someone waiting for him at home.
How is it?
MO Ruyue was more concerned about what had happened in the academy. It was only the first day and the students were already causing trouble.
Its a small problem. Its just that theyve been spoiled since they were young.
MO Ruyue was relieved to see that Gu Ying was telling the truth.
Then Ill go back to sleep.
Ill send you off.
No need. Its just going from this door to that door.
MO Ruyue really didnt think there was anything to give him.
Its getting dark.
However, Gu Ying insisted on sending her off. MO Ruyue had no choice but to let him send her back to the second courtyard.
Alright, Im home. Go back quickly.
Arent you going to buy me a ss of water or something?
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes at him.
I realized that youve changed since you came back from the capital.
What changed? Gu Ying asked hesitantly.
Wasnt he always like this?
Could it be that she felt that he had be thinner and more handsome?
Your skin has thickened.
MO Ruyue pushed him out of the courtyard and closed the door.
Granny Rong and Chun Hua heard MO Ruyues voice and wanted toe over to serve her. However, when they heard her talking to Gu Ying earlier, the two of them retreated.
After confirming that Gu Ying had really left and the door was closed, the two of them came out again to fetch water for MO Ruyue to wash up.
Gu Ying stood outside the courtyard for a long time before he returned to the Qin family with a smile on his face.
The next day, Gu Ying went to the academy early in the morning and told the teachers what to do first before going home for dinner. After dinner, he went over to work with the teachers to decide on the sses and arrangements for the students every day.
There werent many students at the moment. There were only about thirty of them in total. They were all in the same ss and were being taught by a teacher.
The two little kids were eavesdropping outside the window.
Xiong Qiu, are you sleeping?
Xiong Qiu, who had been sleeping in a daze, was suddenly woken up by his teachers name. His face was filled with hostility and he was very unhappy.
He was about to scold him for being a busybody, but when he thought of how Gu Ying had dealt with himst night, he did not dare to be too impudent.
However, he did not intend to answer Sir. He still closed his eyes and treated Sir as air.
The mister was furious when he saw how unafraid he was of boiling water.
Your father sent you here to study, not to sleep here!
Stand up!
Xiong Qiu was not afraid of this mister at all. He did not want to stand up either. That would be too embarrassing for him. Now, more than thirty people were looking at him.
Sir, I have no choice. What youre teaching now has been taught by the previous masters. I felt bored listening to it so I slept? Mister knew that Xiong Qiu was lying.
Then tell me, what did I mean by what I said just now?
Xiong Qiu said unhurriedly, Then youll have to make things difficult for me, sir. I said that I heard you attend the same ss before, but that doesnt mean that I can remember it!
The other silkpants were usually on good terms with him. When they heard him say this, they held back theirughter. This guy was really something.
Since you didnt remember it, shouldnt you listen carefully in ss?
The mister was so angry that he blew his beard and red at him. However, he was only in his early thirties, and his beard had just grown.
Sir, youre making things difficult for me. What you said is really boring! Mr. Subconscious, you sound like youre talking about a luby in ss. The gentleman was furious.
A person like Big Brother should start from the Three Character ssic.
A childish voice sounded from outside.
He probably cant even learn the Three Character ssic. This voice sounded more mature, but it was also childish.
Thats true. Otherwise, it wouldnt be like this.
The students and teachers in the room heard the conversation between the two children outside the window. Although their voices were slightly childish, their enunciation was clear. Hearing the content of their conversation, some studentsughed out loud.
Even the corners of Sirs mouth curled up.
This time, it was Xiong Qius turn to be angered by the words of the two children outside.
Which bear child was this? Why were his words so vicious?
Chapter 530 - 530: Don’t Do It Again
Chapter 530: Dont Do It Again
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Dang dang dang!
The bell rang for the end of ss. The students did not care that their teacher had not left yet and directly rushed out of the ssroom. They wanted to see how the two little kids who were talking could actually say such words.
The one charging at the front was Xiong Qiu. He wanted to see which devilish brat had eaten the heart of a bear and the heart of a leopard to actually dare to say such things about him. He would definitely teach them a lesson!
The teacher hurriedly followed him out, afraid that Xiong Qiu would do something overboard to the two children.
The teacher even wondered if he could remake his skills. These students looked down on him because he didnt have any martial arts value.
If he was like Gu Ying, who knew both literature and martial arts, he would guarantee that these students would be as obedient as chickens in his ss.
Xiong Qiu came out and saw a pair of identical little boys under the window. They were wearing coarse clothes and carrying a basket on their back. There were some weeds in the basket, and there was some soil on their shoes and trousers. They must be children from a nearby vige who hade to their school to y.
You two little bumpkins, what are you saying? Are you itching for a beating?
Although Xiong Qiu said that, he looked at the two adorable little kids who were blinking their big eyes. In fact, if he were to really make a move, he wouldnt be able to do it. He kept feeling that it was unfair for an adult to bully
two little kids who werent even as tall as his thigh. However, he couldnt let them off so easily.
Brother, are you looking down on the farmers?
Tang Tang asked Si Bao seriously.
Si Bao nodded. Its not like that. He just looks down on us farmers.
Tang Tang immediately looked at Xiong Qiu as if he was a fool.
Then you really have to read the Three Character ssic well.
As Tang Tang spoke, she sized up Xiong Qiu from head to toe, looking as if she pitied him for being so stupid.
Everyone present understood this expression. Xiong Qiu naturally understood it as well. He was so angry that his nostrils erged.
He wanted to grab the two kids and talk to them, but Tang Tang took a step back agilely, while Si Bao stepped forward to block his sister.
Tang Tang was also dressed like a child because they were out to pick herbs.
Xia Yu, Wei Er, and the other two servants were looking for wild fruits and bird nests because Tang Tang and Si Bao said they wanted to eat wild fruits and bird eggs.
There were no birds or eggs in a birds nest in the middle of winter.
Xia Yu, who realized that she had been deceived by the young miss and the young master, reacted and quickly looked around.
Xia Yu was outside the academy at the moment, but it was a male academy, so she did not dare to enter. Moreover, she was a servant, so she did not know if the young master and young miss would enter.
She thought that her eldest master should be inside at this moment. If Eldest Master knew that she had lost Little Miss and Little Master again, she would be finished again.
Xia Yu could not care less about whether she would be finished or not. She still braced herself and wanted to go into the school to take a look, but she was stopped by the people at the door.
Xiong Qiu, what are you doing?
When the teacher came out, he saw that Xiong Qiu was about to attack the two children. He immediately came over and pulled him away, blocking in front of the two children.
A few students also looked at Xiong Qiu disapprovingly, implying that he could not bully a child.
Xiong Qiu felt that he couldnt exin it with his mouth, but he had never exined anything to anyone since he was young. So what if they misunderstood? He didnt do anything anyway.
Do you two kids know what the Three Character ssic is?
Its none of your business whether I understand or not. I only know that there are two sentences in the Three Character ssic: It is called Schrs and Farmers and Business and Industry.
Schrs, farmers, workers and merchants are the best people of the country. I am a farmer now, and you are neither schr nor farmer. It doesnt matter whether you are a businessman or not. Anyway, your current status is lower than mine. If you want tough at me, its us farmersughing at you. But Ive read the Three Character ssic. I wontugh at you.
In fact, Tang Tang did not know whether Xiong Qiu was a schr or not. However, she guessed that Xiong Qiu was not a schr based on what the teacher had taught him, because the schr had already learned those things.
In reality, Xiong Qiu was not a sergeant. He did not even have the qualifications to be a child.
Tang Tangs words made everyone present feel that it was true.
Immediately, many of the silkpants expressions turned ugly. So they were not even as good as farmers.
When the other students saw that the little boy actually knew so much logic and was even able to retort Xiong Qiu until he could not say a word, they were all very happy.
Even the teacher had a whole new level of respect for these two children.
Hahahaha, the little doll is right.
Sir felt that he was still too kind with his words. He should learn more from this little childs eloquence to educate these profligate sons.
Look at such simple logic. Even such a small child understands it. Arent you ashamed?
Those rich yboys couldnt find a reason to rebuke Sir for a moment, and they didnt dare to rebuke him now. Indeed, they were not even as good as a child. What face did they have?
He couldnt possibly say in front of the two little kids that he was richer than them and that he was a grandpa?
They really couldnt afford to lose face in front of this little kid. It would affect their silkpants nature.
If the other party was an adult, he would have mocked him long ago.
Kid, whose family are you from? Tell me.
Xiong Qiu felt that he would not be able to get back at these two children. Couldnt they go to his house to get back at their adults?
Its mine. Do you have a problem with that?
Xiong Qius words had just fallen when someone continued his words.
Hearing the voice of the person who spoke, Xiong Qius scalp went numb. Why was it such an unlucky day today?
Xia Yu was beside Gu Ying. When Xia Yu saw the joy on Little Miss and Little Masters faces, she was really scared to death. If she still couldnt find Little Master and Little Miss, she would have tomit suicide tonight.
Little Miss, Little Master, are you alright?
Xia Yu saw that Little Miss and Little Master were surrounded by so many students, and the person in the lead had a fierce look on his face. He must have bullied her Little Miss and Little Master, so she quickly went forward to check.
Sister Xia Yu, youre here. Aiya, Sister Xia Yu, Im sorry. We were listening to Sirs ss and forgot about it.
Only then did Tang Tang and Si Bao realize that they had made another mistake.
Uncle will go hometer. Can you not tell Mother?
Well definitely be more careful next time.
Tang Tang felt uneasy at the thought that Xia Yu and the others might be punished because of her.
They were so engrossed in their teachers lecture that they forgot what they were here for.
It was rare for Gu Ying to see Tang Tang acting like a spoiled child to him. Initially, he med Xia Yu and the others for losing the two children. What if something happened to the two children?
However, when he saw the pleading eyes of the two little fellows, his heart softened.
Alright, this wont happen again.
Tang Tang and Si Bao saw that Gu Ying had agreed. They looked at each other and smiled. They heaved a sigh of relief and said in unison, Thank you,
Uncle.
Xiong Qiu initially did not believe that these two children were from Gu Yings family, but now that he saw that the three of them looked strangely simr, he had to believe it even if he did not believe it. Moreover, he heard the two children call him uncle, so what else could he not understand?
The children of the top two families, dressed so shabbily and carrying a basket with so many weeds in it, were just like those wild children in the vige who searched for weeds all over the mountains and fields every day to feed the poultry at home.. Otherwise, he would not think that they were the children of a peasant family!
Chapter 531 - 531: Who Are You Looking Down On?
Chapter 531: Who Are You Looking Down On?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
What are you guys doing?
Also, from what I heard, could it be that youre harboring a grudge and want to bully my child because I punished you by making you copy the school rules?
No, no, no!
Sir, youve misunderstood. I just think that these two young children are too cute, so I want to ask which family could give birth to such cute children!
When the other students saw Xiong Qius shamelessness, they were really impressed.
Is that so?
Did he bully you? Tell me.
Gu Ying asked the two children.
He didnt bully me and my brother. Its just that he looks down on farmers.
Also, he hasnt even learned the Three Character ssic.
Hence, Si Bao and Tang Tang repeated everything that had happened to Gu Ying.
Gu Ying was very proud of his childrens intelligence, and even Xia Yu admired Little Miss and Little Master.
Such a smart and quick-witted young miss and young master belonged to her family!
Gu Ying understood. Xiong Qiu was indeed as stupid as Tang Tang and the others.
Then well start from the Three Character ssic.
All the students were in disbelief after hearing this. How could they start learning from the Three Character ssic when they were already in their twenties?
Wouldnt they beughed at to death if they said it out loud?
Gu Ying did not care what the students thought. He turned to the other three teachers who had followed him and said, Lets rearrange their study ns again. They cant just blindly study and not understand the fundamentals of human beings.
Even my five-year-old child understands the truth, but they dont. It can be seen how shallow their knowledge is.
Therefore, Gu Ying and the four gentlemen worked out a few new learning ns. For example, they had to personally go to the fields to do farm work during the busy farming season.
He had to take care of his own clothes, food, amodation, and transportation. He even had to teach these students how to start a fire and cook.
Since they looked down on farmers, then let them start as farmers.
The few gentlemen were like-minded people like Gu Ying, so they did not think there was anything wrong with what he proposed. No one objected and it was finalized.
Those students still didnt know what kind of learning system was waiting for them. Until that day came, all of them hated the instigator to the bone.
These were all things to be discussedter.
Before Gu Ying left, intentionally or unintentionally, he said loudly to the teachers in front of the students, If you dont like the food in the school, you can go to the vige sanatorium. The fried chicken and duck made by those veterans taste very good.
Even people from other towns and viges came to buy it every day. Many people ordered it a day in advance. It was really delicious at a low price.
Then lets go and see if we can buy some to try. We cant miss it.
Ill go back first.
After Gu Ying left, a few students beside him hurried back to their dormitory and started chatting.
The food in the academy was not really difficult to swallow, butpared to what they had eaten in the past, it was not just a little bit worse.
He hadnt eaten much on the way here. He had only eaten two good meals in Lianshan County and Kaoshan Town. He hadnt eaten anything decent until now.
Since Gu Ying said it was delicious, it should not be bad.
Many students wanted to try buying fried chicken and duck.
In the end, within a day, the remaining soldiers of the sanatorium, who were supposed to work outside to earn some money, all came back to make fried chicken and duck.
Early in the morning, Tang Tang and Si Bao snatched the waiters from Lidong and Lqiu to deliver spices for fried chicken and duck sauce to the sanatorium. Tang Tang wanted to eat chicken feet in soy sauce.
The two little fellows were followed by Wei Er and Xia Yu. As soon as they arrived at the sanatorium, they met Xiong Qiu who was walking towards them.
Xiong Qiu stared at the two little fellows who were dressed in satin, his eyes almost spewing fire.
If they had dressed like this that day, he would not haveughed at them for being bumpkins.
It turned out that one of them was a girl.
Big brother, hows your learning of the Three Character ssic?
Xiong Qiu thought that since she was a little girl, he would let bygones be bygones and not argue with her. In the end, she hurt people when she spoke!
Tang Tang felt that they knew this person. Although they hadnt met each other happily, as the saying went, they would see each other everywhere. Since they were already facing each other, it was better to greet her. She was a polite child.
However, she did not know that Xiong Qiu had almost suffered internal injuries because of her greeting.
Xiong Qiu pretended that he did not hear Tang Tangs greeting.
The other students felt that this little girl was too smart. They were all bad students, but they knew their limits. They didnt go near Tang Tang. Everyone was out to buy delicious food today.
Ah! Just smelling the fragrance of the fried chicken and braised duck was enough to stop them from walking. However, there were so many people. There were even many people queuing at the door.
How rude.
Tang Tang saw that Xiong Qiu was ignoring her, so she said something else and dragged her brother into the sanatorium.
Xiong Qiu saw that there were so many people in front of him. When it was his turn, there might not be any left to sell.
Suddenly, he saw Tang Tang and Si Bao enter with the maidservant and the manservant!
They did not even think about it and quickly ran over. They wanted to enter from the side, but they were stopped by a veteran who was missing an arm.
Young Master, you have to line up.
Xiong Qiu thought, Is this cooking based on people?
Then why did they go in?
Dont worry, I have plenty of money!
The veteran was still smiling, but after hearing Xiong Qius words, his face became stern.
If you dont want to queue up, then leave. There are still so many people queuing up. I cant let you in.
The veteran rolled his eyes at Xiong Qiu. Are they people you canpare
She really thought that just because she was wearing embroidered clothes, she did not know how much she was worth!
He had seen many people like this.
You, you, you, you, this is unfair. I want to go in too!
It was almost time for ss. He hadnt even had a bite of breakfast, so he wanted to buy some fried chicken and duck to try. Now that he hade and smelled it, he decided to buy it and try it. If it wasnt for the fragrance, he would have left long ago.
But why did this person not get along with him?
He had been really unlucky recently. Ever since he came here, he hadnt had a good day.
If you want to buy it, go to the back and line up. If you dont want to line up, then please do as you please.
The veteran ignored him after saying that.
Xiong Qiu, why dont you go and queue up? Why dont you stop eating ande back next time?
There were two people who didnt want to cause trouble. Seeing that someone was already looking in their direction, they advised Xiong Qiu.
Dean Xues home was in this vige. If he was lured here, he might not even have lunch, let alone breakfast.
Xiong Qiu was the kind of person who would bully others. It would be better if no one persuaded him. Now that someone was persuading him, he had to say something. Otherwise, where would his face be?
No, I must have a good talk with him today. Why should he let those two little fellows in with the servants and not let me in?
Why should I queue up instead of them? Who am I looking down on?
The veteran ignored Xiong Qiu. He could tell that these people were the students brought back by General Xue. He did not want to cause trouble for Gu Ying, so he pretended not to hear them.
He thought that Xiong Qiu would probably leave if he still wouldnt let go after shouting for a while, but he didnt expect this person to be even more enthusiastic..
Chapter 532 - 532: Hotpot
Chapter 532: Hotpot
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Uncle!
Tang Tang and Si Bao both had a chicken foot in their hands and were chewing on it. When they reached the small side door and saw Xiong Qiu quarreling with the uncle guarding the door, they frowned.
What are you doing? Are you bullying my uncle?
Si Bao was the first to rush to the front of the veteran guarding the door and confront Xiong Qiu.
Tell me, did you enter through the back door?
Xiong Qiu saw that the two of them had arrived at the right time.
He was even angrier when he saw the two children eating. If this veteran had let him in, he would have eaten by now.
What back door?
You still dont want to admit it. What did you say about me before?
He had to learn the Three Character ssic again! Humph, humph, little one, you cant deal with them.
Xiong Qiu felt that he had finally won a round.
Young Master, please watch your words. Our Young Miss and Young Master are here to deliver materials.
Xia Yu would not allow this useless yboy to bully her little miss and little master.
Dont make it sound so dignified. Who would believe you?
We all believe it!
Xiong Qiu had just finished speaking when arge group of people echoed from the side, giving him a fright.
When he turned around, he saw that the people in line were looking at him disdainfully.
When those people saw that these young masters wanted to break the rules and cut the queue through the back door, they were angry.
Seeing that he was dressed like a dignitary, they could not afford to offend him or hide from him. However, they could not hold it in anymore.
Tang Tang and Si Bao are really here to deliver fried chicken and sauced duck spices.
Some people were afraid that Xiong Qiu would still not believe them. They did not want to scare the two children and exined to Xiong Qiu.
The spices we need to make fried chicken and sauce duck are supplied by Little Miss and Little Masters family.
The veteran guard added.
Bear Hill
The other profligate sons felt that they had lost face again today.
Not only was he embarrassed, but he was also thought to be bullying a little kid.
He was really going back in time!
The people they bullied in Beijing were all powerful people. Now, they were reduced to bullying a little kid. If word got out, they would beughed at.
Hmph!
Tang Tang and Si Bao couldnt be bothered with people like Xiong Qiu. They couldnt reason with him either.
I advise you to read the Three Character ssic beforeing out.
Before leaving, Si Bao threw out such a sentence. Xiong Qius face was as pale as a dye te.
Who wants to read the Three Character ssic properly? Who provoked our Si
Baoand Tang Tang?
Mother, why are you here?
My brother and I have already given the materials to the uncles.
Tang Tang ran toward MO Ruyue the moment she saw her.
Im here to see if youre working hard. Dont just eat. MO Ruyue pinched Tang Tangs little nose lovingly.
Uncle specially left this for me and brother! Tang Tang turned to look at Xia Yu.
Sister Xia Yu, quickly give one to Mother to try.
Yes, Miss.
Alright, Ill eat when I get hometer. Ill teach your uncle to make another delicious dish.
I want to see it too!
Ill go too.
MO Ruyue brought the two kids into the sanatorium through a small side door. The few silkpants who saw her widened their eyes. They recalled that they had helped Gu Ying unload the things from the carriage on the first day they came here. They had actually seen MO Ruyue and the two kids, but they had only met once. They did not have a good memory and had forgotten about them.
Xiong Qiu was a little annoyed and afraid. Fortunately, he did not offend those two little kids to death.
It was said that this Princess Ming Yue was deeply loved by the Emperor, the Empress Dowager, and even the Imperial Consort. She was simply the most popr person in the pce.
If he provoked her, she could easily say a few words and cause trouble for his father.
Xiong Qiu broke out in a cold sweat. He didnt want to eat the fried chicken and sauced duck anymore and quickly returned to the academy.
The other silkpants naturally followed Xiong Qiu.
On the way, the few of them were still discussing whether this Princess Ming
Yue would find trouble with them. After all, they had also bullied her children.
MO Ruyue did not care about those arrogant silkpants at all. She also knew about what happened to Tang Tang and Si Bao in the academy that day. She felt that her child was a good person, and those people were just stubborn andcked discipline. She believed that after the academys education, they would naturally change for the better.
There was no need to save those who couldnt be changed. She didnt have the time to teach these retired soldiers how to make other snacks.
The daily consumption of chickens and ducks in the sanatorium was now double that of the past, and it was the result of a fixed amount. After all, these people were not as healthy as they were when they were healthy. They had to have enough rest time every day.
As they killed more and more chickens and ducks every day, their internal organs also increased. In the beginning, those people were reluctant to throw away the chicken and duck intestines. Recently, MO Ruyue saw that they were too busy to wash and throw away some of them. MO Ruyue felt that it was a pity.
Today, she was here to teach these people how to make delicious snacks from their internal organs. Not only would they taste good, but they could also increase their ie.
In the past, they had fried chicken and duck innards and eaten them as dishes. Now, they also ate chicken and duck gizzards and livers every day. Many of these people were old. In this era, the number of people with three high blood pressure, high blood pressure, and high blood pressure was very small, especially in poor families. However, in the long run, there would definitely be some problems in the area of galldder.
Regardless of whether or not this person had the Three High, he had to eat a bnced diet every day.
Doctor MO, youre here!
The old soldier guarding the door saw MO Ruyue and quickly stood up, his face full of smiles as he weed her.
Sir, please take a seat. Im just here to take a look.
At the door, MO Ruyue didnt want to say why she was here because there were many outsiders.
Pleasee in.
MO Ruyue brought the two little fellows into the kitchen of the sanatorium.
The kitchen had been renovated and was twice as big as an ordinary kitchen.
Now, there were more than ten people busy in the kitchen.
Outside the kitchen, there were more than ten people busy washing the chicken and duck. MO Ruyue saw that they were about to throw away the chicken and duck intestines and quickly stopped them.
Keep all the chicken and duck intestines for today. Wash them out when you have time.
Yes. Its best if you wash some for me first. I need it.
MO Ruyues words were more effective than Gu Yings. When they heard that she wanted these things, they immediately freed two people to wash them.
MO Ruyue had asked for a little more, but the two men had quickly washed all the internal organs from this morning till now.
MO Ruyue had already prepared a lot of long bamboo skewers. She inspected the chicken and duck intestines and found that they were very clean. She then cut them into suitable sections or slices.
Chicken and duck intestines skewers, chicken and duck gizzards skewers, chicken and duck livers skewers, chicken and duck hearts skewers, there was a huge pile of them.
I didnt expect that these dirty looking internal organs would be skewered after being washed.
Two seasoned soldiers with long spoons looked at the skewers and admired MO Ruyue foring up with such a trick.
I learned this from someone else. Throw all these things into the marinade and it will taste very good.
If a string of intestines, heart, liver, and gizzard was sold for four coins, it was guaranteed that people would fight for it.
This was called skewers. Anything could be skewered, including vegetables..
Chapter 533 - 533: It’s All Because of You
Chapter 533: Its All Because of You
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
As she spoke, MO Ruyue took a few skewers and threw them into the marinade pot. The slices of the internal organs were not that thick, so they could be boiled in the soup for a few minutes.
MO Ruyue had already finished braising while she was talking to them. She took out a skewer and tasted it. Everyones eyes immediately lit up.
This thing goes well with wine!
Mother, I want to eat too.
I wont forget you two little gluttonous cats.
There were already people beside them who were a step ahead of MO Ruyue. The two children each took a skewer of various skewers. There were intestines, gizzards, and hearts on it.
Before they left, MO Ruyue went to take a look at the duck down that they had processed. It would be a waste to throw these things away. MO Ruyue thought of the down jackets of theter generations. These were the best materials, so she told them to keep all the duck down and use medicine to disinfect it. Even if they didnt need it, they could sell it to a cold ce. It would be a source of ie. They should try their best to make the best use of it and not waste it.
After looking around, she felt that there was no problem and brought the children home.
Before they left, the chef gave MO Ruyue a big bunch of braised skewers.
MO Ruyue did not decline. She knew that these were their feelings for her. They would be happier if she epted them.
As a result, when she left the house, she bumped into those silkpants from the Civil and Martial Arts Institute.
These people didnt expect to see Mo Ruyue and the two children again. They secretly thought that they had been gued by bad luck recently.
Xiong Qiu and the others didnt get to eat in the morning, so they waited for lunch. After ss, they ran over immediately.
This lowly one greets princess Ming Yue.
MO Ruyue felt that these people werent so foppish. At least they knew how to read peoples eyes.
She smiled and nodded at them, signaling them to do what they were supposed to do.
You guys have to line up.
Tang Tang reminded them when they tried to cut the queue in the morning.
Were queuing up right now.
Xiong Qiu subconsciously answered Tang Tangs question. He was very obedient and ran behind the few people to line up.
Fortunately, there were fewer peopleing to buy it at noon. Since it was lunchtime now, there were fewer people at noon than in the morning and evening.
Xiong Qiu saw that the maidservant behind MO Ruyue was carrying a basket full of various kinds of meat skewered on bamboo skewers. It smelled very fragrant and he felt that it was quite delicious. He decided to buy some of these to eatter. After all, the food that even a princess ate would definitely not be bad.
MO Ruyue brought a basket full of skewers to the Qin familys house. As expected, these skewers were the most popr for lunch today.
As MO Ruyue ate, she felt that there were not many vegetables left. It was already winter and there were not many vegetables left. There were only radishes and cabbage. Fresh ones were rare.
After the meal, MO Ruyue discussed with Gu Ying whether they could transport some ss over. She wanted to let the vige nt greenhouses on arge scale.
It doesnt need to be all ss like my herb shed. Grass curtains can be used below a meter high, as long as the roof is ss.
That way, the sun could still be raised to breathe during the day and kept warm at night. Instead, it was better than an all-ss one. Her herb shed was often covered with a straw curtain.
Gu Ying nodded and sent a letter to Liu Li Fang.
The old vige chief and Wang Tiezhu knew that MO Ruyue had encouraged the entire vige to build a greenhouse. The old vige chief took Wang Tiezhu through the process, and Wang Tiezhu quickly adapted to his identity as the vige chief.
At the same time, he wanted to let everyone in the vige know that Wang Tiezhu had be the new vige chief of West River Vige, and the old vige chief had be the chief of the vige.
The entire vige was very epting. After all, Wang Tiezhu was young and fair. Many people had watched Wang Tiezhu grow up, and everyone recognized his character.
No matter who became the vige chief, as long as he could bring the entire vige to prosperity, he was a good vige chief.
Before the ss arrived, the entire vige began to look for a suitable ce to build a greenhouse. Of course, the best choice was still close to home, such as the original vegetable garden or the front and back of the house.
The usage rate of the vegetable gardens in the winter was not high, so it was most suitable to build a greenhouse. Moreover, it was close to home and they were not afraid of being ruined by outsiders.
Right now, West River Viges security was the safest in the vige. With a princess around, how could the security not be good?
The vigers of West River Vige had long been used to organizing young adults to guard the vige at regr intervals.
Everyone treated the entire West River Vige as their own territory. They had a strong sense of territory, unlike in the past when they only cared about the snow in front of their own door and did not care about the frost on the roof of others.
If a young man was busy working and there was only an old man or child left at home, the neighbor next door would cook the old and weak food for them. This kind of thing was not umon.
ss arrived three dayster. There were two sons and daughters-inw in the vige who lived in other ces with their children, but the elderly in the family also wanted to nt a greenhouse. It was a little difficult to build this greenhouse, so the vigers spontaneously assigned a few young adults to help.
MO Ruyue was very satisfied with what she saw. She asked Wang Tiezhu and the old vige chief to record it so that the rewards would be prioritized in the future.
Sister-inw, did you ask the entire vige to build this greenhouse so that we can grow vegetables and sell them?
Qin Qingfei was building a shed with a few of her family members. When Wang Tiezhu passed by the house, he berated the servants. How could they allow their wives to work? They would never allow it.
As a result, the two servants at home refused to let Qin Qingfei do anything. She had no choice but toe to her mothers house.
Thats what I mean. No matter where it is in the middle of winter, there will be a shortage of vegetables. If our vige grows vegetables and sells them, not only will the price double, but we can also earn some money for the new year.
Yes, thats true. Sister-inw, youre really amazing. Look, our vige is getting better and better now.
Looking around, which vige can be as rich as our vige now?
In fact, MO Ruyue was not satisfied with the scene in West River Vige.
Her wish was to turn West River Vige into a more prosperous area than Lianshan County. This was just the beginning.
As the two of them were talking, a carriage stopped in front of their house.
Before the person in the carriage had evene down, they already knew who it was. It was the Hua familys carriage.
As expected, after the carriage stopped, Hua Jianan got out of the carriage first. Then, he carefully helped Xue Qing out of the carriage.
Xue Qings belly was already quite big, even if she was wearing a thin cloak now, she could not hide it.
Aiya, its not like Im about to give birth now. If youre so nervous, what will you do when I give birth?
Xue Qing was annoyed by Hua Jianans nervousness every day. She wanted to sneak over to her brothers and sister-inws house to take a look, but this guy caught up with her before she could go far. He shamelessly squeezed into the carriage and followed her.
Hua Jianan let his wife say whatever she wanted, but his hand firmly held his wifes hand.
Aiya, West River Vige is still the livelier ce. In town, I can only stay at home every day, and no one talks to me.
The old master was busy with those pills at home all day long. She did not have much inmon with the old master, and Hua Jianan still had to run to the
inn all day.
She wanted to stay at her brother and sister-inws house, but their house was quite busy now, and it was inconvenient to have so many people..
Chapter 534 - 534: Quick Treatment of Nausea and Vomiting
Chapter 534: Quick Treatment of Nausea and Vomiting
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Aunt Qing.
The children all cuddled up to Xue Qing sweetly. They all knew that she was pregnant and couldnt offend her, so they kept a certain distance from her.
Xue Qing was happy when she saw these children and hurriedly called out to the little maidservant behind her.
Hurry up and take out those sweets and snacks to share with the children.
Xue Qing pulled Tang Tang over and pinched her smooth cheeks. She liked this little girl.
Yes, Madam.
Aunt Qing, the uncles at the sanatorium made fresh and delicious food again. Ill go get it for you to try.
Tang Tang felt that Aunt Qing would bring them delicious food every time she came, so she would share whatever delicious food she had with Aunt Qing.
Before the adults could tell her not to go, the little girl had already run to the sanatorium.
MO Ruyue could not be bothered to care about the children who were so lively and happy every day. She let them be. She was not sure if there were still any skewers left.
Xue Qing was looking forward to the delicious food. They all knew that MO
Ruyue was the one who taught them how to cook in the sanatorium. MO Ruyues culinary skills were impable.
Sister-inw, what big move is this vige going to make?
Hua Jianan was curious when he saw that every household in the vige was building something. There were also quite a number of colored ze in the vige.
This thing was not cheap. He had also bought a greenhouse for his wife to grow flowers at home, and spent a lot of money.
Lets go sit in the courtyard. Ill tell you in detail.
Xue Qings waist was sore from standing for a long time, so she went straight to the Qin familys house and sat in the courtyard.
Qin Qingshuang had already heard the noise from outside the courtyard. Before she could go out, they had alreadye in. She personally went to bring the fruits, pastries, and tea.
Qin Qingshuang was about to turn ten, but she was always reluctant to go out because there were matchmakers who wanted to propose marriage to her. She tried her best to stay at home.
Therefore, Qin Qingshuang was rarely seen in the vige.
MO Ruyue simply asked Granny Rong and Granny Yan to groom Qin
Qingshuang as a daughter of a noble family.
With her elder brothers and her own status, Qin Qingshuang would definitely marry a good man in the future. It was better to make preparations in advance than to be in a hurry.
Qin Qingshuang had always been a gentle person. MO Ruyue often encouraged her to do whatever she wanted and not to be afraid. Even if her parents were no longer around, she still had her brother, sister-inw, and sisters.
After a few rounds of persuasion, she realized that this little girl felt that she had grown up and should be more calm. She did not force it anymore. This was a personality problem that could not be forced.
Fortunately, this girl did not panic when she encountered something.
Ill get the whole vige to build a greenhouse so that we can grow vegetables in winter and eat them at home.
Because only the roof was made of ss, every household would build a small one first. This way, they could all afford the price. Later on, when they made money, they could build another one.
Hua Jianans eyes lit up again.
Sister-inw, sell it to me. I can take care of it all!
Ill definitely give the excess to your family, but I still have an inn in my own vige.
MO Ruyue decided to open the inn in the vige after the mountain was cleared. She would sell it as fast food with a small profit but quick turnover. She would definitely not lose money.
Hua Jianan looked disappointed, but he was not discouraged. Sister-inw, can I invest in the vige to build a greenhouse for me and then produce it for me?
Hua Jianan quickly calcted in his heart just now. As long as there were vegetables, he would definitely not lose out.
Alright, go and discuss it with Wang Tiezhu and the others.
MO Ruyue did not want to worry about these things.
Hua Jianan instructed the maidservants to go look for Wang Tiezhu. Sister-inw, I heard that it was your idea to dig the mountain over there? Xue Qing picked up a piece of pastry and stuffed it into her mouth.
I heard from my husband that someone from the other side of the mountain in Lianshan County has also started to dig here. Could it be that Sister-inw wants to dig through this mountain?
Sister-inw, what are you trying to do?
Xue Qing knew that this might be confidential. She was just asking. It would be best if Sister-inw said so. She wouldnt mind if she didnt say it.
The others also looked at MO Ruyue.
A mountain was built in a straight line from both ends. If it was opened up, it would be a mountain road.
Xue Qing never thought that MO Ruyue would do this on purpose, but she guessed that it must be for some reason.
It should be finished soon. Youll know why I did it then.
As the adults in the courtyard were talking, a group of children returned. Tang Tang ran into the courtyard first, followed by the older children. It was obvious that they were giving way to her.
Aunt Qing, you must like to eat this. I like it too.
When I went there, the uncles had already sold out. This was specially made for us.
Then did you give me money?
I gave them to them, but they didnt want them. In the end, they insisted on giving us these skewers.
Si Bao felt that it was not good for them to go and ask for it specially.
Then next time, you can go and help the uncles do more work.
MO Ruyue also knew that the adorable people in the sanatorium would never ept money from their family. She could only use this method to make up for it.
Qin Qingfei had already grabbed a skewer in each hand and was enjoying it. Xue Qing couldnt help but take two skewers. She took a bite and it was so fragrant.
Scoop. I can make it 70%.
Xue Qings mouth was so full that she could not speak clearly. It was rare that she did not forget to ask if she could eat it.
Yes, dont worry and eat, but you cant eat too much.
Yes, yes.
Xue Qing nodded repeatedly.
You go. Buy more, you must give money, give this one too.
Grandpa will definitely like it too.
He would definitely be happy to bring it home to go with his wine.
Tang Tang saw that Aunt Qing liked to eat the food that she liked to eat, so she retired with satisfaction and went to y with her friends.
Dont just watch me eat. You guys eat too.
Everyone had just finished their meal, but they had to take care of Xue Qings embarrassment, so each of them took a skewer.
Qin Qingfeis expression changed as she ate. When she reached the second skewer, she couldnt help but put it down and run out. She couldnt help but retch at the door.
Her appearance shocked everyone present and they followed her out to see what was going on. Xue Qing ran out at a fast speed, scaring her maidservant so much that she almost fell.
Big Sister, whats wrong?
Qin Qingshuang was terrified when she saw Qin Qingfei.
Im fine. Ugh
Qin Qingfei saw her sisters terrified expression and tried tofort her, but her stomach wouldnt allow it.
Aiya, did you eat something bad?
Aunt Zhou was also shocked.
Could it be that the thing just now wasnt washed clean?
Xue Qing widened her eyes in horror when she thought of a possibility. She also felt her stomach churning.
Its not vomit
Qin Qingfei had just opened her mouth to say two words when she vomited again.
Chun Hua, go to the pharmacy and get two hawthorn slices.
Chun Hua quickly went to the pharmacy.
MO Ruyue had already grabbed Qin Qingfeis hand. With one hand, she pinched her thumb and forefinger, which could quickly cure her nausea and vomiting. With the other hand, she took Qin Qingfeis pulse.
Before Chun Huas hawthorn slices were brought over, a smile appeared on her face.
Xue Qing smiled when she saw MO Ruyues expression. She squinted and pointed at Qin Qingfei happily.
Sister Qingfei cant be pregnant, right?
Exactly.
MO Ruyues simple words caused Qin Qingfeis heart to race. Her eyes reddened instantly as she grabbed MO Ruyues hand.
Sister-inw, is that true?
Are you lying to me? Is that true?
Chapter 535 - 535: A Good Job to Fight Over
Chapter 535: A Good Job to Fight Over
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue understood Qin Qingfeis feelings at the moment. She had always
hoped that she could bear a child for Wang Tiezhu. Most of the hardships she had suffered in the Liang family was because she had not been able to bear a child. Of course, the Liang family was not a good family by nature.
It was also because of the incident with the Livingstones that it was difficult for her to get pregnant again. She had always been brooding over it.
Wang Tiezhu had always known what Qin Qingfei was thinking. He often consoled her and didnt want to extinguish her hope. He said that if the heavens pitied them and let them have their own child, he would love it the most. If there really wasnt, they would have Goudan too.
Goudan had long treated Qin Qingfei as his mother, and Qin Qingfei knew that.
However, since ancient times, having many children and grandchildren was considered a blessing. She did not want Wang Tiezhu to only have a son because he married her. Even if she could give birth to a daughter for Wang Tiezhu, it would be good.
She had always been envious of other pregnant women. Now that MO Ruyue had told her that she was pregnant, how could she not be excited?
Xue Qing quickly took out her handkerchief and wiped Qin Qingfeis tears.
MO Ruyue supported Qin Qingfei as they entered the courtyard and sat down.
Why are you crying?
Isnt this a good thing?
Youre only a month old pregnant now. You cant let your emotions affect the child in your stomach.
MO Ruyue had checked Qin Qingfeis pulse just now and found that she was still very healthy.
However, a pregnant womans mood was different from before. She would think too much, afraid that she would think too much and cause unnecessary things.
Thats right, Sister Qingfei. Isnt this great news for you?
I dont want to cry. Its such a happy thing. Aiya, hurry up and tell Tiezhu Brother-inw.
Xue Qing waved her hand at the maidservant behind her, asking her to go out and look for her. There was only one servant girl with Xue Qing now, but MO Ruyue asked her own servant to go.
MO Ruyue and Xue Qing talked to each other and persuaded Qin Qingfei for quite a while. Qin Qingshuang and Aunt Zhou were also happy for her at the side. Only then did she stop crying.
Yes, yes, Im happy. Im happy.
Then we have to celebrate today.
Today is indeed a good day. I came at the right time, hehe.
Xue Qing refused to go back immediately. She had to have dinner here.
She hadnt had enough of those skewers.
We must celebrate. We must celebrate.
These words were said by Wang Tiezhu who had just entered the room. He was overjoyed when he heard the maidservants report and ran all the way here, extremely excited.
The moment he entered the house and saw his wifes eyes, he knew that she had been crying. His heart ached again. He ignored the crowd and walked to Qin Qingfeis side and pulled her into his arms.
Wife, thank you!
Embarrassed, Qin Qingfei pushed him away.
What are you doing!
There are so many people here. Sister-inw and the others are all here!
Wang Tiezhu knew that his wife had always been thin-skinned, so he obediently pushed her away. He quickly turned around and bowed solemnly to
MO Ruyue.
Sister-inw, thank you!
Wang Tiezhu could only say these words from the bottom of his heart. It was inconvenient for him to say anything else. Everyone knew that.
What are you thanking me for? This is because youre amazing. It has nothing to do with me.
MO Ruyue deliberately joked, causing Wang Tiezhu and Qin Qingfei to blush.
Hahaha
Hahaha, congrattions, Brother-inw!
Hua Jianan had also arrived.
He had also decided to invest in the construction of a greenhouse in West River Vige.
Tonight, the Qin family had a very lively dinner.
Qin Qingfeis good news seemed to be the spark of the celebration, followed by thepletion of MO Ruyues princess manor, which she could move into
immediately.
On the first day of construction of the princesss manor, the royal carpenters also began to make furniture for the princess manor.
The lowest quality ones were made of high-quality mahogany and yellow rosewood. Some were exquisite, such as the jewelry box, which was made of golden nanmu.
In this era, there was no such thing as formalin. At most, the furniture was only coated withcquer. Many of them were polished with wood to give it a bright shine.
If MO Ruyue liked it, she could move in immediately.
Before that, MO Ruyue had to invite all her rtives and friends to the princess manor for a house-warming drink.
She was about to send someone out to invite her good friends, but Mrs. Yan, who didnt like to talk much, couldnt stand it anymore.
Princess, this old servant suggests that you write an invitation. This way, it will be more formal.
Oh, right, right, right. I would have forgotten about this if you didnt mention it.
MO Ruyue could not be med for this. She had always asked people to shout at her before, so she had never written an invitation. Even when she went to the county government to visit the county magistrates wife, she had never written an invitation.
Indeed, her identity was different now. Moreover, after moving into the princesss manor, her identity was more official than it was now.
She couldnt let down the princess manor that the emperor had specially funded.
I have to write this invitation myself to show my sincerity, but my handwriting really cant be seen by others.
Why dont you ask Qingyan to help you write it when Qingyan and the otherse back tonight?
MO Ruyue asked Granny Yan.
Of course, Princess. You are a noble person, so of course you dont have to do it yourself.
Thats good.
Gu Ying was the one with the best handwriting in the house, but he was busy
with his academy every day, so he probably didnt have much time.
She couldnt help him share his worries, and she didnt want to cause him trouble.
That night, when the whole family was together, Gu Ying noticed that Qin Qingyan was writing an invitation. He went over and saw that he was writing an invitation for MO Ruyue, so he immediately took the brush away from him. Youre already quite tired after studying for a day in school. Let me write these.
Qin Qingyan wanted to say that he wasnt tired, but Qin Qingshuang covered his mouth.
Ill listen to Big Brother.
The next day, Lu Shen came to MO Ruyues house to tell her that the cave had been opened before she could finish writing the invitation card. He asked MO Ruyue if she was satisfied with the inspection.
So fast!
MO Ruyue thought that this was manualbor. She thought that even if there were many people, it would take at least two to three months, right?
It had only been a month, and he had already cleared it!
Lu Shen smiled.
Isnt it all because of Princess wit that you came up with such a good idea? Those people were afraid of being slower than others, and with four groups of people working day and night, their speed was naturally four times faster.
This is faster than any of our previous attempts to open a mountain. This is the first time Ive been able to open such a mountain so easily without any casualties.
Those who dug the tunnel had always thought that there was gold in the stone. They were not serious about it.
If it wasnt for the tight watch, those people wouldnt sleep or go home to fight over it.
Even if they werent as enthusiastic in the future, two hundred catties of stones for fifteen wen was still a good job.
As they dug, they also dug out experience points. This was also one of the reasons why their speed increased.
Those people could dig at least 400 catties of stones a day, and there were even
500 to 600 catties of stones. However, there were only a few of them.
After the mountain path was dug through, the people who worked had their wallets bulging. This job is gone, and I see that many people are unwilling to go home!
It was also the first time Lu Shen saw someone working so hard.
Award!
MO Ruyue couldnt sit still. Of course, she had to go to the scene..
Chapter 536 - 536: Mountain Opening Again
Chapter 536: Mountain Opening Again
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When Gu Ying heard the news, he hurried from the academy to the foot of the mountain.
There were no longer any sharp edges or corners in the cave. It was rtively smooth and there was no problem walking through it normally.
The density of the rocks here was rtively high. MO Ruyue was already very satisfied with the result.
Thepleted mountain tunnel was about nine and a half feet (three and a half meters) high and twelve and a half feet (four and a half meters) wide, enough for two carriages to pass through at the same time.
MO Ruyues mountain-opening method had opened up a new world for Lu
Shen. He felt that this method could be widely used in the future.
It would be best to put up a sign above this cave.
For example, the Coiling Silk Dao.
MO Ruyue rubbed her chin and thought about a nice name.
Lets call it Bright Moon Mountain.
Very good.
Lu Shen immediately agreed with Gu Yings suggestion.
County Magistrate Wu had already received the notice and had alreadye
over from the five-hundred-meter mountain path.
Bright Moon Mountain, good, good!
This symbol is the mountain that our Princess Ming Yue opened, it couldnt be better!
This was a great convenience for the people in Lianshan County, West River Vige, and even Kaoshan Town. This was all thanks to Princess Ming Yue!
Princess Ming Yue loves it!
The few old men were chattering away, not giving MO Ruyue a chance to speak at all. She simply couldnt get a word in edgewise, so they named the mountain
Ming Yue Mountain.
Old Lu, you have to write a memorial on this matter and report it to the
Emperor!
Of course, of course!
Oh, right, right. Can I also use this method to open up the mountain between Lianshan County and the government office? Wouldnt it be much closer to the government office?!
County Magistrate Wu was inspired by this and felt that Lianshan County and the state capital could do the same.
So Lianshan County and the state capital are also in such a geographical location?
MO Ruyue hadnt been to the state capital before, but she had passed by the capital twice, so she didnt pay much attention to it.
Thats right.
Thats definitely possible. However, this matter still has to be decided through the higher-ups.
After all, she was only thendlord of Lianshan County.
This is easy to handle. When this lowly official drafts this memorial, add it together.
Old Wu, you should also write another memorial. We can present it to the Emperor together. There should be no problem.
Lu Shen had tasted the sweetness and felt a sense of aplishment in opening the mountain like this. He wanted to try again so that he could master the technique more skillfully, so he agreed with County Magistrate Wus idea.
MO Ruyue didnt care how they nned. She just needed those old men to discuss it themselves. She called a manservant and asked him to go to the town to find Foreman Fangs team.
Where do you want to build a house now?
Dont tell me to guess first.
Upon hearing MO Ruyues instructions, Gu Ying couldnt help but think of the little toys that she had asked him to bring back from the capital.
There were a few shops in the vige that set up stalls every day, and many people came to visit them. She thought that he should have guessed it.
Do you want to build some small shops on both sides of the mountain roads exit?
Wow, I realized that youve be smarter. However, it makes sense. If youre not smart, you cant be both civil and martial. Hahaha.
MO Ruyue was so happy today that she couldnt help but praise Gu Ying.
Gu Ying listened to her praise for a three-year-old child and was delighted.
The hundreds of mountain diggers had worked for a month, but they hadnt even obtained a single grain of gold sand. They didnt care anymore. At the very least, they would earn at least 30 to 40 copper coins a day, which was enough for them to live a good new year.
In less than a month, it would be the new year, and all of them were smiling. Some of the workers looked worried. What could they do after the New Year?
Especially for those who had lessnd.
Each of them carried their own food and went home with their own thoughts.
They had only taken a few steps when they were discovered by Lu Shen. He left
County Magistrate Wu behind and hurriedly called out to these people.
Everyone, dont go yet. I have something to tell you.
Those people stopped and waited for Lu Shen to speak.
After everyones joint efforts, we were able to break through this mountain so quickly and sessfully. Princess Ming Yue said that she would reward you!
Lu Shen waved his hand, and a few people behind him carried two baskets to the crowd.
When everyone saw the basket, their eyes widened!
The basket was full of coppers!
Everyone will be rewarded with 30 coins!
This time, the workers all cheered. This 30 copper coins was equivalent to a days pay.
MO Ruyue hadnt expected them to be able to clear the mountain so quickly.
She saw that many of them had lost weight. She could still remember some of them. Some of them were still chubby when they first came, but now they had be lean and skinny after a month.
ording to the usual procedure of opening a mountain tunnel, each person would be paid at most 20 copper coins per day. However, such a
500-meter-long mountain tunnel would take at least three months to half a year. How much more would that cost?
Everyone was happy to receive an extra 30 copper coins.
This thirty wen is for Princess Ming Yue to buy you two catties of meat and have a good meal at home!
Lu Shen was also happy for these people.
After all, these people had been working for a month. Every day after they finished their work, they would line up to receive their money. Therefore, they had already lined up on their own ord. One by one, they came forward to receive 30 copper coins, and they were all happily showing their big teeth.
Dont leave after you get your money. Theres something else I have to tell youter.
Something else?
Everyone was guessing what was good about this?
When thest person received the money, Lu Shen stood in front of them and pulled County Magistrate Wu over.
Everyone knows County Magistrate Wu, right? Now, County Magistrate Wu wants you to open up another mountain. The mountain that youre opening up is the one between Kaoshan Town and Lianshan County, which is about the same size as the one were opening up.
You guys have experience. Are you guys willing?
If youre willing,e to me and sign up. Well quit this year. Its going to be the new year in a few days. After the fifteenth and sixteenth, everyone wille to work. The sry will still be the same as before.
This time, those people all cheered. In the end, all of them actually came over to register.
On the 16th of December, the Hua family, the Qin family, and the county magistrate Wu all came to the princesss manor with invitations.
These few people seemed to have an appointment as they all arrived at the door at the same time.
Moreover, all of these families hade, and all of them were dressed very formally.
The vigers of West River Vige had also arrived under the leadership of the old vige chief and Wang Tiezhu. Of course, some of them, such as the old vige chiefs wife, Mrs. Wang, Mrs. Chen, and the others, had already arrived at MO Ruyues ce. They had originally thought that they could help out in any way, but now that MO Ruyues family had enough manpower, there was no need for them to do anything. They were all treated as guests of honor.
When the vigers saw the scene, they all sighed. This was simply too different from the past.
Who would have thought that someone in the vige would rise to such a high position and be such a noble?
Previously, when MO Ruyue returned from the capital, although they knew that she had be a princess and everyone was in awe of her, MO Ruyue had always been easy-going and approachable. She only dressed a little luxuriously, so they did not feel that deeply.
However, it was different now. This magnificent princess manor made them realize that only those with the status of a royal princess could live in such a good mansion.
And these people were even invited into the princesss manor to drink house-warming wine.. This was simply a supreme honor!
Chapter 537 - 537: Don’t Slander Sister-in-Law
Chapter 537: Dont nder Sister-in-Law
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Every family secretly remembered this matter. When they returned hometer, they would definitely record this matter next to their name in the genealogy. This was a very glorious thing.
The banquet was prepared by MO Ruyues own family, who had been trained by Aunt Zhou, Qin Qingfei, and the others. With the cooperation of Jiayao from the Dce. the taste was naturallv verv good.
MO Ruyue was prepared to let these people be the head chefs in the viges inn after the new year.
There were many people today. MO Ruyues family and the servants of the Qin family had alle to help.
Even with so many people, they were still very busy. Fortunately, there was Granny Rong and Granny Yan to supervise, and Chun Hua and the other four maids to help arrange the table in order.
Tang Tang and Si Bao were dressed in red satin as they shuttled among the guests, toasting their mothers.
Doctor Qin and Old Master Hua were both toasted by MO Ruyue herself. The others, such as Qin Rouwan and Boss Yu, who hade along because of Qin
Rouwan, did not dare to ept MO Ruyues toast. Therefore, Tang Tang and Si Bao offered a toast on her behalf.
After the meal, everyone was admiring the splendor of the princesss manor and drinking tribute tea when the congrattions from the pce arrived.
The eunuch was still the same eunuch from earlier.
The eunuch did not hesitate either. He got off the carriage and took out the list of gifts from the Emperor, Empress Dowager, and Imperial Concubine Li. He read it out in front of everyone for a full fifteen minutes.
Respect this!
Thank you, Emperor. Long live, long live, long live!
After MO Ruyue thanked him one by one, the eunuch quickly went forward to help MO Ruyue up.
Congrattions, Princess Ming Yue!
Qian Sui, Lord Qian Sui, thismoner wants to sue MO Ruyue! Thismoners husband and son were MO Ruyues biological father and brother, yet she had left them in the lurch. Now that they were both dead, how could such an unfilial daughter be a princess? Lord Qian Sui, please understand!
Impudent!
The eunuch was scared out of his wits by the womans thousand years.
Moreover, the dirty words she said to MO Ruyue made him even angrier.
Although he didnt know if what the woman said was true, how could she say such words in public? She said it in front of him.
He made it sound like he was more pampered and powerful than the princess.
Putting aside the fact that he was just a eunuch, Princess Ming Yue was the most popr person in front of the Emperor, Empress Dowager and Imperial Concubine. There was no one who couldpare to her. How could a eunuch like him casuallyment on her? Unless he thought his life was too long!
Where did this crazy womane from?
The eunuch waved at the guard behind him. No matter who the woman was, he could only do this now.
As long as he determined that this woman was a crazy woman, then everything she said would be nonsense.
Im not talking nonsense. Im not a crazy woman. Im MO Ruyues mother!
Eunuch, you must be clear!
Such an unfilial daughter could not be a princess. She would be an unfilial daughter who would be struck by lightning!
MO Ruyue had recognized MO Ruyues mother as soon as she spoke. She was now looking up and pushing her messy hair behind her. Although her face was dirty and pale, she was much thinner than before. MO Ruyue could also recognize her. She was the person that the original MO Ruyue hated.
The eunuch heard that this person was still full of nonsense and was prepared to let the guards take this crazy woman away.
If you dont believe me, you can go to our vige and ask around. Shes the daughter of my MO family!
A few months ago, her brother fell ill, and she! My poor son was tortured to death by the disease. Her father couldnt ept the loss of his beloved son and followed him. Poor me, Im a white-haired man who sent my ck-haired son away. Now, Im all alone and miserable. Its all because of this rebellious daughter, rebellious daughter!
MO Ruyues mother screamed without caring about anything else. She was going to go all out now. Even if she had to put a knife to her neck, she would finish her sentence and ruin MO Ruyues reputation!
Wasnt she unwilling to interact with his family?
Even if she died today, she wouldnt let her off so easily. This b*tch!
Her husband and son were already dead, but this b*tch was here wearing gold and silver, living a luxurious life, and even bing a princess. What right did she have?!
The eunuch was shocked when he heard the womans words, because MO
Ruyue did not refute the womans im that she was her daughter.
However, regardless of whether she was telling the truth or not, she had already decided that this person must be treated as a lunatic!
Gu Ying and the others naturally recognized MO Ruyues mother and were furious when they heard her words.
How shameless!
It was unknown what kind of suffering MO Ruyue had suffered in the MO Family. In the end, when she turned eighteen, she was sold to the poor Qin family and had four children.
Their cruel parents could no longer be called their parents. Besides, MO Ruyue was sold by them back then. Strictly speaking, MO Ruyue was not considered a member of the MO family at all.
However, this shameless mother of MO family had specially chosen such a big day toe and cause trouble. It could be seen that she was vicious.
You crazy woman, you and my sister-inw have long been strangers. My sister-inw was sold by you.
Everyone in our vige knows about it!
Qin Qingshuang was so angry that she couldnt be bothered to maintain her refined demeanor.
It didnt matter how these people bullied them, but they were not allowed to nder her sister-inw again.
Moreover, they had already seen how shameless this person was. It was not the first time.
If she were to confirm her sister-inws reputation, how would she be able to live in the future?
MO Ruyue did not expect that the first person to stand up for her would be Qin Qingshuang, who rarely went out and did not treat herself as a child.
Qin Qingfei was trembling with anger. Wang Tiezhu quickly held her, afraid that she would go up and fight with that crazy woman.
Wife, dont be angry. As long as Im here, watch how I deal with her. Lets not fight her.
Qin Qingfei believed in Wang Tiezhu and nodded encouragingly.
Hurry up and go. Dont just stand there.
Wang Tiezhu understood his wifes gaze and rushed to MO Ruyuesmother first. Then, he looked around at everyone present.
The people of West River Vige should all know that thest time this family came, her son had a sexually transmitted disease. This sexually transmitted disease is like a gue, and no doctor can cure it.
After Wang Tiezhu finished speaking, the vigers of West River Vige all nodded, and many of them spoke up to prove it.
Thats right. How can we me the princess?
If you want to me someone, its your son who messed around outside and caused a sexually transmitted disease and died when he went back! It should be your responsibility as a mother!
Thats right, thats right. Maybe her husband also died of a sexually transmitted disease.
This person did not expect his words to hit the nail on the head.
MO Ruyue didnt even need to say anything. The vigers were all talking at the same time, and MO Ruyues mother was stumped.
MO Ruyues mother thought to herself, Did Ie here for nothing today?
NO!
Even if its their own fault, theyre all dead now. Are they your biological father or your biological brother?
Since you dont even want to go back and offer incense, and your father kept saying your name before he died, he wanted to see you onest time to get your forgiveness.
Back then, there was nothing he could do when he sold you, but he was still the father who gave birth to you and raised you!
His blood flows in your body after all. This cant be erased.
Youre making him die with grievances!
MO Ruyues mother said tearfully.
After the previous two encounters, she knew that MO Ruyue was a tough nut to crack. Now that she couldnt get her way, she decided to go easy on her.
She didnt believe that he couldnt give MO Ruyue some trouble to disgust her.
Since ancient times, no matter which dynasty it was, the emperor would always value filial piety the most, even if they were the ones who sold her out..
Chapter 538 - 538: Did You Raise Me?
Chapter 538: Did You Raise Me?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyues mother rolled her eyes and shouted, I was the one who sold you back then, not your father!
Why are you so heartless?
She didnt even let him see her for thest time! Your father died with regrets, he died with regrets!
When MO Ruyues mother shouted these words, everyone present still felt that she was faking it. However, those who did not know the inside story could not help butin.
Since ancient times, people had been raising children in order to support their old age.
She really shouldnt have not seen him for thest time.
No matter how contradictory the situation was, the dead were the most important.
The people on this side were frowning. This shameless woman actually used a self-harming tactic to turn the tables.
Your vige is so far away from ours. How could my sister-inw know about what happened to your family?
Qin Qingyan couldnt help but rush out to confront MO Ruyues mother. I sent someone to deliver a letter. The first time, they said that you didnt ept them at all. The second time, you didnt even let anyone enter the vige!
Her father had waited until hisst breath, but he did not even close his eyes.
How cruel!
MO Ruyue remained calm after hearing this, but the others did not agree.
This old woman had actually ndered her. If the letter had reallye, such a situation would not have happened at all.
No one knows about this. I was the one who forbade the messenger from entering the vige.
Im from West River Vige. Ive never heard of anyone being blocked from sending a letter outside the vige.
Mrs. Chen was the first to step forward, followed by Mrs. Wang, and then the rest of the vigers vouched for MO Ruyue. They said that they had never seen anyone who came to deliver the letter.
You are all from the same vige as her. Now that she is in your vige, you will only benefit. I know that you dont dare to offend her.
Forget it, she is now a princess, and we are just those unpresentable people!
After MO Ruyues mother said this, she saw that some of the people had strange expressions on their faces. She knew what she could do to drag someone down with her. The more she said, the more pitiful she became.
When the vigers of West River Vige heard MO Ruyues mother bbering shamelessly, they were so angry that their faces turned red and their necks turned red. They wanted to go up and give her a few ps. However, the eunuch from the Imperial Pce was still here, so they did not dare to go too far. They were afraid that they would cause MO Ruyue some trouble. They could only be pointed at by this crazy woman and speak nonsense. There was nothing they could do.
MO Ruyues mother had brought many vigers with her when she came, and now they were all pointing at MO Ruyue.
The eunuch felt a headacheing on.
That woman was right when she said that she was MO Ruyues mother, but this person obviously wanted MO Ruyues reputation to be ruined!
I stopped those letters.
Im from the Qin family.
MO Ruyue was sold by the MO family for five taels of silver. Shes a member of the Qin family.
I dont want her to have anything to do with the MO family anymore. She was originally bought by the Qin family with money, so her freedom toe and go is decided by the Qin family.
She doesnt know anything about what youre saying.
Gu Ying stood up and said these words. The outsiders who were originally whispering stopped talking and looked at Gu Ying.
What nonsense are you spouting?
MO Ruyue did not expect Guying to say that. The letter must have been made up by that shrew herself.
There was no need for Gu Ying to stand up and say this. It would only damage his own reputation.
Gu Ying raised his hand to stop MO Ruyue from speaking.
What I said is the truth.
I feel that MO Ruyues pestilence-like sexually transmitted disease is a very unlucky thing. I dont want MO Ruyue to have any contact with the MO family at all.
Therefore, the people they sent to deliver the letter were all blocked by me.
MO Ruyues mother did not expect Gu Ying to say this. She had never asked anyone to send a letter.
However, he had said these words herself, so he could not take them back.
The eunuch gave Gu Ying a huge admiration in his heart.
Take this crazy woman away!
As for whether Princess Ming Yue wanted to offer incense to her dead father or not, that was not something he could care about.
He still had to quickly go back and tell the Emperor about what happened in the princess manor today.
Besides, he was a eunuch here. He would only be in trouble.
ording to him, such people should be dealt with privately. If they were not uprooted, they would grow again!
He definitely couldnt tell Princess Ming Yue about this. She was such a kind person.
The eunuch felt that it was fine to tell Gu Ying.
The guard reacted smartly. He took out a handkerchief or something from his pocket and stuffed it into MO Ruyues mothers mouth so that she could not make any more sounds.
The guards wanted to drag MO Ruyues mother away to await her punishment.
Wait!
MO Ruyue stopped the guards from taking Mother MO away.
Be careful when you pull her. Rest of you, listen to me.
The people of West River Vige naturally listened to all of MO Ruyues orders. The people who came with MO Ruyues mother also looked at MO Ruyue, wanting to know what she wanted to say.
Some of them were already feeling nervous before they came. They didnt expect MO Ruyue to really be a princess!
They had only heard rumors before and thought it was nonsense They did not expect it to be true.
They didnt want to go head-on with MO Ruyue. They were just nobodies after all, and they couldnt defeat such a powerful person.
His husband and son both died of a sexually transmitted disease. If you havee into contact with them, it is best to find a doctor to check your pulse and see if you have been infected.
If one person got the disease, the whole family could be infected.
This woman had already contracted a sexually transmitted disease.
As soon as MO Ruyue finished speaking, the group of people who had been standing beside MO Ruyues mother immediately distanced themselves from her.
MO Ruyues mother shook her head in fear.
She didnt!
However, she could only shake her head with a piece of cloth in her mouth. Her arms were still twisted by the soldiers and she could not move.
MO Ruyue didnt care whether these people believed her or not. She directly instructed County Magistrate Wu.
Ill have to trouble County Magistrate Wu to send someone to surround that vige and get them to check their pulse one by one.
All those who were found to have a sexually transmitted disease were gathered in one ce and isted. Outsiders were not allowed to approach them, or the consequences would be unimaginable.
If there are any who escape, we can take tough measures.
County Magistrate Wu, please remember that sexually transmitted diseases are equivalent to gues.
MO Ruyue had no choice but to say so. The sexually transmitted disease was not as serious as the gue, so it could not be underestimated.
MO Ruyues mother and the few people she had brought with her were all shocked and terrified. Two of them had even run away.
There was no need for the masters to give orders. A few soldiers went forward to stop the fleeing people.
As the few escapees had attracted most of the peoples attention, MO Ruyues
mother also sent someone to chase after them. Coincidentally, a person passed by her, and MO Ruyues mother managed to struggle free. She took the opportunity to pull the thing out of her mouth and shouted at MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue, although Im not your biological mother, Ive raised you for eighteen years. Its said that the kindness of birth is not as great as the kindness of raising you.
Are you sure youve raised me in the past eighteen years?
Ever since I could remember, I grew up working hard under your beating and scolding.
If you were not satisfied, you would not have food for three to five days, or sleep in the wilderness.
Perhaps the heavens have taken pity on me, allowing me to escape the jaws of wolves and wild beasts. Its my fate that I didnt die by your hands.
You should give up.
MO Ruyue waved her hand. Take her away. She will be punished for viting the Princesssw.
MO Ruyue did not care about what others thought of her. She was not a silver coin, so she never thought that everyone would like her. There would always be a group of people who did not like her..
Chapter 539 - 539: You Don ‘t Have to Self-Defamate
Chapter 539: You Don t Have to Self-Defamate
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
County Magistrate Wu arrived very quickly. A group of bailiffs took all the people away. The rest was up to County Magistrate Wu, and MO Ruyue no longer cared.
After they were taken away, MO Ruyue thought that the eunuch would say goodbye to her. However, she heard him say, Princess Ming Yue, Empress
Dowager and Imperial Concubine Li ate the honey you gavest time and said it was very delicious.
Princess, do you have more?
Yes, please wait a moment, Eunuch. Chun Hua, quickly go and prepare some?
Chun Hua went to prepare.
Princess Ming Yue, this servant is thick-skinned. I heard that Princess vige has some fresh fried chicken. Can you give this servant a taste?
Actually it was the Emperor who asked him to ask. The emperor wanted him to bring back a portion for him to taste, but this kind of thing that was brought back from outside the pce, even if Princess Ming Yue dared to give it to him, he wouldnt dare to bring it back to the Emperor to eat even if he had ten guts.
The Emperor himself had also thought of this. The situation in the court was not very stable, so he decided topromise and let him taste it for the Emperor.
Oh, this is my fault.
Wei Yi quickly go and prepare a fried chicken and duck sauce for the eunuch, as well as some braised skewers for the guards to taste.
Wei Yi received the order and rushed to the West River Vige sanatorium. MO Ruyue had also invited the veterans from the sanatorium, but they knew their ce and did note. They felt that they were not worthy of entering the princesss manor. There were already many people here today, so they did not want to trouble MO Ruyue.
In the end, MO Ruyue directly sent ten tables over.
The sauce duck in the princesss manor today was made by the sanatorium.
Wei Yi quickly returned with a few baskets of fried chicken, sauced duck, and skewers.
Xue Qing smelled it and suddenly felt hungry again. Qin Qingfei couldnt stand the fragrance. She wanted to eat it when she smelled it, but she wanted to vomit when she saw it.
When Wang Tiezhu saw Qin Qingfeis expression of wanting to eat, he was delighted and prepared to get some for his wife. However, when he saw her nauseous expression, he became anxious again. His wifes morning sickness was too severe. There were so many dishes on the table previously, but she only ate a few mouthfuls of vegetables. What should he do if this continued?
Aiya, this thing smells really good!
How fragrant!
The eunuch couldnt wait to take a few baskets from Wei Yi.
The veterans in the sanatorium did not know that it was for their father-inw to eat. They simply put it in the basket rudely. The eunuch did not mind. It was already not easy to have such delicious food in thisnd. Did they expect them to use those exquisite food boxes to store these food? How much money would that cost?
Then Princess Ming Yue, this servant will take his leave and return to report.
The eunuch didnt n to eat here either. He nned to eat while walking on the road. That way, he could save time.
The eunuch took the remaining ten or so jars of honey that Chun Hua had brought over and returned to the capital with the guards.
After the eunuch left, MO Ruyue took Qin Qingfeis pulse.
A few days ago, she had been busy with the construction of the mountains, the construction of houses on both sides of the deep mountain road, and the construction of the greenhouse in the vige. Qin Qingfei did note to look for her, thinking that she did not have any pregnancy reactions. However, when she was eating today, her reaction was not just a little big. She had only eaten some vegetables at the banquet and almost could not swallow them.
Why didnt youe to me when you were feeling unwell?
Sister-inw, Im telling you, shes just showing off!
Ive already asked her to look for you. Shes worried that youre busy and doesnt want you to be so tired.
Wang Tiezhu finally found a chance toin.
Qin Qingfei red at him, her eyes clearly saying, Ill teach you a lesson when I get home!
Wang Tiezhu didnt care at all. At most, he would go home and make him kneel on the washing board.
Sister-inw, this isnt my first child. Im not that delicate.
Qin Qingfei refuted Wang Tiezhu.
MO Ruyue checked her pulse. This has nothing to do with the first or second child. Everyones pregnancy is different from one child to another.
If you cant eat, will the child grow?
Qin Qingfei was shocked by MO Ruyues words. She did not care if she suffered or felt ufortable, but nothing must happen to the child.
Wang Tiezhus heart ached when he saw his wifes frightened expression. He hurriedly coaxed, Its fine, its fine. Lets do as Sister-inw says. Itll definitely be fine.
MO Ruyue could not be bothered to watch the two of them show off their affection. She prescribed a prescription to stop vomiting and increase the appetite. This is to stop vomiting and increase the appetite. You can eat it first ande back two dayster.
Qin Qingfei could only nod obediently at MO Ruyues words.
Wang Tiezhu quickly took the prescription and went to the pharmacy to get the medicine.
The vigers helped to clear away the tables, chairs, stools, bowls, and chopsticks in the courtyard. The throttle was almost done.
Those who should have left had left, and there were not many left.
Master, why dont you stay here for a few days? And you too, Sister. My house is too big, and its a little cold with only my mother and me.
Granny Rong, Granny Yan and the other four maidservants waited for the servants
So they werent humans?
However, they knew their own limits. The princess was friendly and treated them like family. They had good judgment and their positions were very proper.
Everyone knew that MO Ruyue had only said this because she wanted Doctor Qin and Qin Rouwan to stay in the princesss manor for a few more days.
Alright, then Ill bask in your light.
Haoyan and Haoyu will also stay behind and help your aunt with more work.
Doctor Qin had long seen the longing in Qin Haoyus eyes, so he took the initiative to speak.
As for Qin Rouwan, he couldnt make the decision, especially since she always had someone following her.
Actually, he was quite happy to see that stalker. However, he did not know what was wrong with his daughter, so she pretended not to understand the meaning of the stalker.
Sigh, hes old. He doesnt understand the world of young people!
Doctor Qin asked someone to apany him around the princesss manor. He had yet to see how glorious the princess manor was, so he had to take a good look around. This was his disciples princess manor.
Now that there were fewer people, Granny Yan brought a few servant girls to register the things rewarded by the pce.
Granny Rong personally brought two servant girls to clean up the guest room for Doctor Qin.
MO Ruyue went to talk to Gu Ying.
Why did you say that before? Even if you dont care about your reputation, if you ruin it, how can your academy still recruit people?
Even if theres really no other way, I still have truth powder. Theres no need for you to nder yourself.
Dont use that thing again. That thing is too shocking.
Besides, schrs pay attention to morality, propriety, righteousness, integrity, and shame. If you cant even understand what Im saying, then you dont need such a student.
Unreasonable people will not be able to stand out. Even if theye to my academy, I will not ept them.
He just did not want MO Ruyue to reveal her truth powder. She might not be discovered if she used it once or twice, but if she used it too many times, it would reveal a w and be discovered by some people. Even the royal family members who treated MO Ruyue well might not be able to resist the temptation.
It was better for them to keep a low profile
For MO Ruyues safety, not to mention his reputation, it was worth it to bet everything he had.
MO Ruyue looked at Gu Ying and knew that he would insist on her words, so she decided not to say anything..
Chapter 540 - 540: It’s Better If You’re Beaten to Death
Chapter 540: Its Better If Youre Beaten to Death
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Si Bao and Tang Tang suddenly ran over. When MO Ruyue saw the two little fellows, especially Tang Tang, she knew that they must have gone to do something bad.
Mother~
Tang Tang immediately clung onto MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue pulled her away.
Tell me, what did you do this time?
Mother~
Tang Tang acted coquettishly again, but her mother still had a serious expression on her face. Her heart was pounding as she twisted her little fingers.
I went to sprinkle the powder on her.
Tang Tangs voice was as low as a mosquitos. If it werent for Gu Ying and MO Ruyues excellent hearing, they really wouldnt have been able to hear what she said.
Who did you sprinkle the medicine on?
What medicine did you use?
MO Ruyues heart was in her throat. This girl was getting bolder and bolder. She was a little unsure whether it was good or bad for her to study medicine.
Its that annoying old woman. Who asked her to bully Mother?
I spilled it, not my sister.
Si Baos voice was much louder and clearer than Tang Tangs.
You want to take the me for your sister again?
Si Bao shook his head. Mother, please believe me. I really did it.
MO Ruyue saw Si Baos serious attitude and knew that he was probably telling the truth. This child was not good at lying. Once he lied, he would reveal his ws.
What did you sprinkle?
I dont know.
I dont know. Tang Tang shook her head.
MO Ruyue saw that these two kids didnt even know what kind of medicine it was, yet they dared to sprinkle it on someone else. They were only five years old. Even if they were going to turn six soon, they shouldnt be like this. She couldnt let them be so arrogant.
The two of you go face the wall and reflect on your mistakes. When you realize that youve done something wrong,e and see me.
Tang Tang saw that her mother was really angry. Her eyes turned red, but she didnt dare to cry. Si Bao pulled her to face the wall and reflect on her mistakes.
Dont be angry. The two of them are still young. Just teach them well. If they do something wrong, you can even hit them.
Gu Yings opinion was the same as MO Ruyues. Now that MO Ruyue was teaching the two children, it was not appropriate for him to say anything as an uncle. If he said too much, MO Ruyue would be unhappy.
He was the only one who could talk about her child. Outsiders were not allowed to talk about it.
The two children had angered her to such an extent today, yet she could not bear to hit them. It was obvious how much she doted on the two children.
Si Bao and Tang Tang faced the wall and thought about it until dinner. Then, they came over to apologize to MO Ruyue and asked her not to be angry.
Mother, Im sorry. Dont be angry. It was Si Bai and Tang Tang who did something wrong. They shouldnt have drugged others.
If she met such an annoying person again, she would do the same thing, but she would definitely do it without anyone noticing!
Si Bao was thinking that the next time he met such a person, he would spend money to hire someone to do it instead of doing it himself. That way, he would not be afraid of being discovered.
They would not let go of anyone who dared to bully their mother. They were just too careless this time.
Naturally, MO Ruyue did not know what the two kids were thinking. In fact, she had already felt sorry for them after they had spent the entire afternoon reflecting on their mistakes. However, the two kids did note over to apologize to her.
As a mother, she couldnt possibly punish her children when they made a mistake and then take the initiative to apologize to them.
In that case, the two children would only be morewless next time.
When it was time for dinner, the two children finally arrived.
MO Ruyue didnt care how the two kids admitted their mistakes. As long as they came over, she would be soft-hearted.
His face was still stiff. Dont do it again, understand?
When others make mistakes, thew will punish them. If you do it, you will be the one who makes the mistake.
Yes, Mother.
The two children admitted their mistakes sincerely.
MO Ruyues mother, who had been sprayed with some kind of powder by the two children, felt itchy and painful all over.
She already had a sexually transmitted disease. Although there were not many festering areas on her body, the powder was effective when it touched her skin. Now, it had even prated into her flesh. It was so ufortable that she wished she could die on the spot. She kept knocking her head against the cell door, hoping that someone woulde and find out that something was wrong with her.
She didnt know that she was drugged and thought that this was how she looked when her sexually transmitted disease acted up.
She did not want to die yet.
Someone, go and call MO Ruyue over. Shes my daughter. Shes a divine doctor. Shes a doctor. Im sick. Ask her toe and treat me. Ask her to save me-
As MO Ruyues mother spoke, she couldnt help but reach out to scratch the itchy spots on her body. The pain was excruciating. It was worse than death.
However, no matter how she shouted, her voice was hoarse and she did not see a ghost.
At night, it was even more ufortable. It was simply hell. The stench on her body attracted many rats and cockroaches.
Rats and cockroaches crawled directly onto the festering parts of her body. Although the cell was dark and there was no light at all, Mrs. MO knew what was lying on her body. Squeak squeak
Ah-help-
MO Ruyues mother called for a long time, but no jailer came. She had already been bitten by rats several times.
I know a few people who havee into contact with me. They might have contracted the sexually transmitted disease, but they left the vige and went somewhere else. Didnt MO Ruyue say that the sexually transmitted disease was like a gue?
Those people are spreading sexually transmitted diseases everywhere. Arent you going to do anything?
MO Ruyues mother was also going all out. As expected, not long after she finished speaking, two jailers ran over, but they were far away from the cell where MO Ruyues mother was imprisoned.
The next day, County Magistrate Wu personally came over to report to MO Ruyue. MO Ruyues expression turned ugly when she heard this.
You must capture those people. If you dont have enough manpower, apply to your superiors.
Also, think of a way to eliminate all the rats and cockroaches in the cell. Its best not to let them bite people or touch you.
Forget it, wait for me for a while.
MO Ruyue went to the pharmacy and took out a few medicinal powders that she had prepared earlier. She mixed them and made the newest medicinal powder in fifteen minutes.
Take these back and eliminate all the rats and cockroaches in the cell. If its not enough,e and ask me again.
MO Ruyue handed arge packet of medicinal powder to County Magistrate Wu, who received it with both hands.
This lowly official will follow Princess Ming Yues instructions strictly.
MO Ruyue did not feel sorry for Mother MO who had been bitten. To her, the stepmother was simply an enemy, and it would be better if she was bitten to death. However, the rats and cockroaches that had bitten her had carried the poison of the sexually transmitted disease, and it must not be spread to the outside world.
County Magistrate Wu also understood how the sexually transmitted disease spread. He was so frightened that he broke out in a cold sweat. He did not care about being rude anymore. He took the powder and bid farewell to MO Ruyue before rushing back to the yamen through the mountain tunnel.
He didnt even sit on the bench. He personally ordered the bailiffs to go to the prison to eliminate the rats and cockroaches.
MO Ruyues mother was unwilling to admit defeat when she saw that MO Ruyue had note. She was unwilling to tell County Magistrate Wu who the person who had interacted with her and left the vige wag
County Magistrate Wu didnt want to listen to her either. He would know once the poption was taken into ount.
MO Ruyues mother saw that no one was paying attention to her. Moreover, those people were still holding something and scattering it outside her cell door. She was very anxious.
What are you doing? Did MO Ruyue ask you to do this?
She would be struck by lightning and die a horrible death!
County Magistrate Wu heard Mother Mos harsh words about MO Ruyue and immediately ordered the guards to shut her mouth.
The bailiffs were afraid of touching her, so they used sticks to execute her across the cell..
Chapter 541 - 541: Mother Was Bullied
Chapter 541 - 541: Mother Was Bullied
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
County Magistrate Wu attached great importance to Mu Dongmeis (MO Ruyues mothers) sexually transmitted disease, especially when her husband and son both died of it.
He immediately reported it to his superiors. However, the position of magistrate had been vacant due to the crime of framing MO Ruyue during the gue. County Magistrate Wus memorial had been sent directly to Tongzhi.
Tongzhi was also much more capable than the original magistrate. It was also because of the previous gue that he paid great attention to the sexually transmitted diseases.
After receiving County Magistrate Wus memorial, he immediately sent many people to assist him in capturing the person.
With the increase in manpower and many skilled soldiers, County Magistrate Wu was like a tiger with wings. Soon, he gathered and supervised all the people who hade into contact with Mu Dongmeis family, the entire MO Family Vige, and those who hade into contact with the MO Family Vige.
The people who had followed Mu Dongmei to look for MO Ruyue were locked up that day and did not return home for several days. Many vigers went to the county government to report the case, but they were caught one by one.
The people who were arrested all knew the whole story and hated MO Ruyue to the bone.
County Magistrate Wu felt that these people simply did not know right from wrong and told them the seriousness of the sexually transmitted disease.
When those people heard this, they shifted their hatred to Mu Dongmeis family.
She was the only one left in Mu Dongmeis family who hadnt died. Just thinking about it made everyone afraid. They were afraid that their family would be next.
The total number of people who hade into contact with the MO Vige was 365. It was too many.
In order to make it easier to manage, everyone was trapped in the MO Vige. The soldiers guarded the perimeter, just like how they did during the rat gue.
Those people cried and fought, causing a ruckus. In the end, County
Magistrate Wu used thunderous methods to directly kill two people, so they did not dare to make any more noise
In fact, those two people were prisoners on death row. He took the opportunity to drag them over to scare those people. As long as the effect was good, it was enough. Sometimes, he had to use some extraordinary methods.
MO Ruyue felt that it was her mistake not to have thought about how sexually transmitted diseases could be contagious. She felt very apologetic.
If she had thought of this earlier, there would not be so many people locked up now.
She had to do something.
She personally went to the MO Family Vige and stood at the entrance of the vige to talk to the people inside.
You dont have to be too afraid. Among you, perhaps only a few people will be infected.
You just have to wait for the doctor to take your pulse. Before that, you can live your lives at home as usual. Its just that you cant leave this vige.
The onset of the disease varies. The fastest is two to five days, and the slowest is one to two months.
Within two months, none of you will show any signs of illness. At that time, the ban will be lifted.
Whether its for yourself or for your children and family, if you discover anyone with a problem, you must report it in time. Otherwise, what awaits you will beplete annihtion.
This can prevent infection, and there are ways to avoid infection. Ill tell everyone how to prevent infection. Remember clearly and do as I say. This matter will be over soon.
This is also a helpless move. We cant let people in the country and even more ces end up like Mu Dongmeis family because of you people. Now that Mu Dongmei has also contracted the sexually transmitted disease, she has already reached a rtively serious stage and cant be cured.
MO Ruyue stood in the MO Vige andforted them for two hours. Only then did those people gradually calm down. They recalled how terrifying the gue was before and how it was cured by this woman in front of them. Now, she said that as long as they behaved themselves, it wouldnt pass very quickly.
Many people still believed in MO Ruyue. After all, she had experience in curing the mouse gue
Therefore, most of them were very obedient and even helped to subdue those who were disobedient.
These people were locked up in the vige. Although there was still somend that could be used to grow food, they definitely could not make ends meet. They needed external help. They could not let these people starve to death without dying of illness.
MO Ruyue then asked County Magistrate Wu to send word to all the towns that every household would donate a corresponding amount of grain ording to their actual situation. Even a handful of rice per household would do. Of course, she would take out a thousand taels of silver to buy grain, and would continue to donate itter depending on the situation.
After all, it was her mistake this time.
She wasnt afraid that the viges and towns below wouldnt donate. The method was very simple. If the people of MO Vige were hungry and ran out secretly to their ce, what would they do?
Those people thought that it was not the case. It was better to give them some food and let them stay in MO family vige in peace.
When MO Ruyue was doing all these things, she had brought Si Bao and Tang Tang along.
Although the two children were very young, they were much smarter and more sensible than ordinary children.
MO Ruyue asked the two children after they had finished eating after a long day of running around.
Did you meet many so-called bad guys today?
Tang Tang and Si Bao looked at MO Ruyue nkly.
The people of MO Vige might have the virus. If theye out, they will harm others. Are they bad people? MO Ruyue asked in a different way.
Si Bao and Tang Tang nodded.
Then, if I lock them up in the vige and forbid them froming out, will I be a bad person in the eyes of their children? MO Ruyue asked again.
Because Im the one who limits their movements, some people might even be locked inside until they die.
Dont deny it first. What if the person who gave the order wasnt mother but someone else? Then, was this person also very bad?
Tang Tang and Si Bao agreed with their mother, but they felt that something was different.
But that old woman bullied you.
Tang Tang felt that her mother was being bullied.
She bullied me because of her child. Her child died of illness. She thought that I could save him but couldnt, so she died. She was resentful, so she said that to me.
Her mother did not deny that she was a bad person, but from her perspective, her mother might be a bad person too.
If her child was still alive, do you think it would be okay to poison me like you
Si Bao and Tang Tang finally understood what MO Ruyue meant.
Mother, we really know our mistakes. We wont do this again.
Si Bao and Tang Tang spoke sincerely in unison. MO Ruyue finally felt relieved.
It seemed that the two children had really understood that they had note for nothing today.
We learn skills to strengthen ourselves and Imow how to help ourselves and others. We cant rely on our own abilities to harm others or take revenge.
The heavens would always stand on the side of reason. Those who made mistakes would not be able to escape the punishment of thew.
Seeing that the two children understood, MO Ruyue exined in detail what they had done earlier.
On the twenty-eighth day of the new year, everyone in the MO family vige who hade into contact with the sexually transmitted disease finally stabilized.
County Magistrate Wu had collected a lot of resources from the towns and viges for the new year. He had sent all of them to MO Family Vige.
This also made the people of the MO family vige feel that they had not been abandoned by the higher-ups.
Although they were locked up in the vige and restricted from going out, there were no shorings in their lives. It was even better than their previous lives of hard work.
Some people even felt that it was good to be noticed like this. They could eat and drink without going out to do work. Of course, this was the thought of a minority..
Chapter 542 - 542: The New Year Is Here
Chapter 542 - 542: The New Year Is Here
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Fortunately, there were not many people who had contracted the disease. They were concentrated in the area where Mu Dongmeis house used to be. In addition, many fences were set up to separate them from those who had not been found to have the disease.
Tongzhi had received the Emperors approval to personally investigate the case of the sexually transmitted disease and strictly followed MO Ruyues decision.
This incident had made all the officials involved in this matter more aware of MO Ruyues right to speak. Everyone was also working seriously.
Although this princess was a fake princess, the royal family recognized her. Her ability to execute and handle matters was not inferior to that of a man.
They even treated Princess Ming Yues orders as if they were an imperial edict, so Magistrate Wus work was much smoother.
Even County Magistrate Wu thought that if he never left Lianshan County, he would be veryfortable as a county magistrate here for the rest of his life. After all, he had a big shot protecting him. That feeling was not something that a person who fought alone could get.
Early in the morning on New Years Eve, no matter when or where, every household was filled with joy.
Both adults and children were busy. The adults were busy making food and putting up couplets on the door. The children were busy eating all kinds of food that had just been made. From time to time, they would take out two firecrackers to blow them up and discuss with each other who made the fruits and fried fish. It was delicious.
The childrens movements could be heard from every corner of the vige. If they couldnt find the children for a while, they would definitely be able to find their children by following the sound of the firecrackers.
The princesss residence was considered a new residence, so the Qin family unanimously decided to celebrate the new year with Wang Tiezhus family on the eve of the new year.
When Wang Tiezhu went to the princesss manor, he first set off the firecrackers at home. Then, he went to the princesss manor to have a reunion dinner. After dinner, he sat down and chatted for a while before bringing his wife home. Because there would be juniorsing to their house to pay their New Years greetings in advance, they could not leave the house without people.
Gu Ying, Qin Qingyan, Qin Qingshuang, and the others stayed in the princess manor and did not return to the vige.
The vigers also knew that if they wanted to pay a New Years visit, they shoulde to the princesss manor.
He didnt want to bring his sister-inw back and leave MO Ruyue alone with the two children in the Princesss manor.
There was a charcoal brazier in the middle of the hall. There was no need for a fire in this weather, but Granny Rong and Granny Yan both said that a brazier was the best way to show off the flourishing days, so MO Ruyue had no choice but to let them light one.
Gu Ying stayed with MO Ruyue while Qin Qingyan and Qin Qingshuang excused themselves.
Tang Tang and Si Bao insisted on staying with their mother for the New Year. As a result, the two children fell asleep. Because of the charcoal basin in the room, the two children slept until their little faces were red.
Ill open the window a little wider. Its a little hot.
MO Ruyue had drunk some fruit wine at night, and now she was a little dizzy from the smoke from the stove. She wanted to sleep too.
Sit down, Ill do it.
Gu Ying stopped MO Ruyue, who was about to get up, and asked her to sit down. He quickly walked towards the window that was already slightly open.
Go and sleep for a while.
Initially, Tang Tang and Si Bao were still chattering with them. Now that they were the only ones awake, the atmosphere was a little awkward.
It was the new year, and MO Ruyue had already asked the maids and the old nanny to go y on their own, so they werent around.
Im not sleepy. Ill apany you.
Gu Ying returned to his original seat.
Why dont we get married?
Boom!
Gu Ying did not sit properly and fell to the ground. MO Ruyue hurriedly went forward to help him up.
Did you drink too much tonight?
I saw that you didnt drink much. Your alcohol tolerance is so bad. Drink less next time.
Gu Ying stood up and stopped sitting.
What did you just say? Drink less next time.
The sentence before that?
You drank too much.
Lets get married!
Say it again.
Gu Yings voice trembled.
I said lets get married. Youre not young anymore.
MO Ruyue didnt think it was a difficult thing to say.
It was all because of Gu Ying. If she didnt take the initiative to say it, who knew how long she could wait.
She didnt like to drag things out. After spending so much time with Gu Ying, Gu Ying always thought of her and put her first in everything.
She felt that they could already get married, and there was no point in dragging it out.
You, why are you looking at me like that? If you dont want to get married
I want to! I really want to! I really want to!
Gu Ying hurriedly finished MO Ruyues sentence.
I just couldnt believe it. I thought I heard wrong and thought I was dreaming.
Well get married whenever you want!
Ive already prepared everything. Im just waiting for you to marry me.
She did not expect happiness toe so suddenly. He had even pinched himself secretly just now.
Pfft, if you marry into the family, you cant regret it.
MO Ruyue was now a princess. If she were to get married, he would be the son-inw.
Dont think about it. I definitely wont regret it!
If I cant marry you, I dont think Ill ever get married in my life.
Seeing Gu Yings serious expression, MO Ruyue also said seriously, i l dont care if what youre saying now is true or not, but if you marry me, Ill take it that what youre saying is true. If you ever do anything to let me down in the future, Ill personally end you.
MO Ruyue did not think that way at first. She had always thought that it was not suitable for them to be separated. But now that she thought about Gu Ying betraying her, she could not bear it.
Im a jealous woman, and a super jealous woman at that. I cant even get a speck of dust in my eyes.
Yes, Princess!
In the future, I, Gu Ying, will be yours in life and your ghost in death. I will absolutely be loyal to you alone!
MO Ruyue nodded. Mm.
And then?
That was it?
Shouldnt he show his loyalty to her?
Then, when we go to visit Master tomorrow, well ask him to choose an auspicious day for us to host our wedding.
Gu Ying was gone in an instant.
Alright.
His Ruyue was different from others!
However, dont you have to rush into the pce tomorrow?
I think so. I almost forgot if you didnt mention it.
The two of them were still chatting in the house when the sound of firecrackers could be heard outside the house. It turned out that the new year had arrived.
Gu Ying smiled gently at MO Ruyue. Ill go set off the firecrackers.
MO Ruyue nodded.
The men in the family were the ones who lit the firecrackers during the new year. Even the manservant did not let him interfere.
Go and take a nap first.
Gu Ying remembered that MO Ruyue would be hurrying on her journey soon and had not slept the entire night. He urged her to catch up on her sleep.
As a princess, she was supposed to spend the Spring Festival with the Emperor and Empress Dowager in the pce. Considering that she had two children at home, he asked her to go after the Spring Festival.
Okay, you should hurry up and go too.
She would wake upter and take the two children away, leaving Guying at home with Qin Qingyan and Qin Qingshuang. They still had to receive those who had brought their children over to visit.
The princesss manor was veryrge, and there were many courtyards and rooms. Therefore, MO Ruyue had reserved a private room for everyone she knew. At this moment, Gu Ying went to his private room to sleep, and MO Ruyue also went back to her room.
She only felt that she had not slept for long before she was woken up by the nannies again.
MO Ruyue was really sleepy. She closed her eyes the entire time and allowed Granny Rong and Chun Hua to help her change her clothes, wash her face, put on makeup, and tie her hair.
EvenTang Tang and Si Bao had woken up and started to eat breakfast by themselves. MO Ruyue was still in a daze and only wanted to sleep..
Chapter 543 - 543: Ancestor
Chapter 543 - 543: Ancestor
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Bring some food in the carriage. Give it to her when she wakes up.
As soon as Gu Ying finished speaking, he gently picked MO Ruyue up and carried her out of the room to the carriage in the courtyard. He gently put her down, but when he put her down, MO Ruyue opened her eyes and nced at
Gu Ying.
If theres nothing else, you can sleep.
Following Gu Yings gentle words, MO Ruyue closed her eyes and fell asleep again.
The servants also saw Gu Ying carrying MO Ruyue out. No one dared to object. Everyone knew that if nothing unexpected happened, Gu Ying would be their familys Prince Consort in the future. They were happy to see this happen.
Granny Rong and Chun Hua swiftly packed some of MO Ruyues favorite food into a food box and carried it into the carriage. They ced it in a secretpartment for warm tea. There was a charcoal fire under the secretpartment.
This carriage was also made by the royal family. It was arge carriage that the princess used to travel in.
Because the carriage was big enough, Tang Tang, Si Bao, Granny Rong, Chun Hua, and MO Ruyue were all in the same carriage.
Seeing that their mother was sleeping so soundly, the two little fellows didnt have the heart to disturb her. No matter what they did, they onlymunicated with their eyes and didnt make a sound at all. Granny Rong and Chun Hua were very curious. Why was their little master so cute?! Originally, they were worried that there would be something wrong with the two children entering the pce They were afraid that they would make mistakes. Granny Rong taught the two children court etiquette every day at home. The two children actually learned it well and remembered everything they taught.
Now, they felt that even if these two children did not remember any special etiquette, they were probably very popr. After all, these two children were too sensible and made peoples hearts ache. They were also so cute, and they were the same twins. What an auspicious child!
They started their journey early in the morning. MO Ruyue only woke up in the afternoon when the carriage jolted slightly. Princess, do you want to eat something?
Drink some warm water first.
Granny Rong had already prepared it for MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue looked at the people in the carriage. It took her a while to recall that they were on their way to the capital.
Since they were heading directly from Lianshan County, the journey was much shorter. In the evening, they didnt encounter any inns, so MO Ruyue ordered them to continue on their way.
He first sent a guard to the next station to book a room. They also arrived in the middle of the night, which shortened the journey by half a day, so they entered the capital the next evening.
After entering the capital, he first went to the princesss pce to rest. He had to enter the pce early in the morning of the third day.
Wow, we have so many houses!
Tang Tang ran around the pce and sighed.
On the way, the two little fellows were the most excited and happy. The
children would not feel bored sitting in the carriage. The scenery along the way was very strange. After arriving in the capital, the prosperity of the capital made the two children even more dizzying. The princesss manor was also the same.
The reason why MO Ruyue had brought the two children to the capital this time was also because the Empress Dowager and Imperial Concubine Li had specifically asked her to bring the two children along.
MO Ruyue was not here and had taken Granny Rong, Granny Yan, and the others with her. However, the Emperor still sent people to take care of the pce. He was afraid that if MO Ruyue came, no one would clean up the room. At the moment, it saved him a lot of trouble. He could just stay in the pce MO Ruyue had been sleeping in the carriage the whole time, so she was quite energetic when they arrived in the capital.
Do you guys want to go shopping with Mother in the streets of the capitalter? Its very lively. There are manynterns, circus performers, and sugar figurines at night
Yes, yes, yes, Mother, lets go now!
Tang Tang couldnt wait any longer, and Si Bao chimed in beside his sister.
It just so happens that we can eat and shop on the street. This way, we can eat and shop.
Chun Hua smiled when she heard the Little Masters words. Isnt Little Master killing two birds with one stone?
How could it be three?
Si Bao didnt feel that he had said anything wrong, nor did he have any intention of exining. Instead, he looked at Chun Hua with an expression that said, Chun Hua, why are you so stupid?
It was Tang Tang who answered her question.
Sister Chun Hua, youre so stupid.
Look, if we go shopping, this is the first benefit. If we eat, this is the second benefit. If we go shopping and eat, we dont have to cook at home. Isnt this the third benefit?
Chun Hua and Granny Rong burst intoughter after hearing this. Chun Hua even hit herself on the head.
Aiya, this servant is indeed too stupid. Little Miss and Little Master, you have to give this servant more guidance in the future. Otherwise, you will definitely embarrass Little Miss and Little Master!
Okay, if theres anything you dont understand in the future, just ask. If I dont tell you, Ill tell you.
Tang Tangs temperament suddenly sublimated, and she felt that she had the demeanor of a teacher in the school. This servant thanks Little Miss and Little Master
Chun Hua thanked them seriously.
She wasnt lying. She really felt that her little miss and little master were as smart as those civil officials.
MO Ruyue had already changed into a clean set of clothes. Granny Rong had once again tied his hair into a simple bun. There was a jade hairpin that had no trace of any other colors in it. It was simple yet elegant.
Si Bao and Tang Tang had also been changed by Chun Hua. When MO Ruyue came out, the mother and son trio were dressed in parent-child outfits.
Granny Rong noticed that MO Ruyue and her children looked very good even if they were wearing coarse clothes. Therefore, when she was making clothes for them, she basically made them into parent-child outfits.
Lets go!
As soon as they came out, Tang Tang and Si Baos eyes were not enough to see. They ran to this stall and then to that stall.
Wei Yi and the other three guards followed closely behind them. There were also a few others who were falling behind them.
Granny Rong and Granny Yan followed closely behind the masters with the other four maids, afraid that if they were not careful, the two little masters would be squeezed.
MO Ruyue pulled them along the street, one in each hand. The two children stopped to buy whatever they liked.
Today, they were specially brought out to y, so even if they bought useless things, they would buy some as long as they liked it.
They did not need so many people in the family, but there would always be someone who could use it. They would not buy it for nothing.
Aiyo, did you see that? That littledy just now, why does she look like Princess Ming Yue?
However, she had two children with her. Those two children were really beautiful. The two children called the littledy Mother in a crisp voice. The mother and children were dressed the same. The two children were like little fairies. There was no need to mention how handsome they were!
Aiyo, thats right!
I really want to hurry home and let my son and daughter-inw give birth to twins. As long as they are twins, it doesnt matter if its a boy or a girl!
If they can be like the two twins just now, then their ancestors are green smoke!
MO Ruyue had no idea that the three of them had be a beautiful sight on the streets of the capital.
She brought the two children to the pce until the beginning of the morning.
Meanwhile, Ji Hong, who was in the Imperial Pce, had long known that MO Ruyue hade and had even brought the children out shopping.
He wanted to go too..
Chapter 544 - 544: Giant Poison
Chapter 544 - 544: Giant Poison
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ji Hong threw away the writing brush in his hand and stopped approving the memorials. It was fine if he didnt want to be a tired emperor. People could go shopping or stay at home with their families, but he still had to approve memorials during the New Year.
Just thinking about it made him angry.
Its time for the Emperor to sleep.
Ji Hong got off the dragon throne.
Emperor, which consort are you going to recruit tonight?
Ji Hong ignored the eunuchs words and strode out of the hall. The eunuch hurriedly trotted after him, but he didnt dare to say anything. In the end, he realized that this road led to Imperial Concubine Li.
The eunuch thought to himself that this Imperial Concubine Lis glory and favor would never fade, so these servants must serve her well.
MO Ruyue and the two children woke up early in the morning of the third day of the Lunar New Year. She could not afford to lose her spirits today. She thought that the two little fellows would be very listless. However, when they heard that they were going to the Imperial Pce today, they were extremely excited. They wished that they could grow wings and fly over immediately to take a look.
In a while, you cant just look around and run around. Its rude. If you see the
Emperor, Empress Dowager and Imperial Consort, dont forget to kowtow. I remember, Mother. Youve said it so many times that I cant even count.
You child, Ive only said it for the third time. Alright, lets go.
MO Ruyue changed the topic.
The first person to visit upon entering the Imperial Pce was the Emperor, then the Empress Dowager, and then the Imperial Concubine. MO Ruyue did not intend to visit the others, nor did she need to.
Aiyo, these two little people quicklye to this widows side, let this widow take a good look at this little handsome appearance!
In the end, Empress Dowager followed MO Ruyue and the others to Imperial Concubine Lis ce. She would visit her eldest grandson at Imperial Concubine Lis ce every day.
Today, when she saw Si Bao and Tang Tang, even their eldest grandson was not as fragrant as before.
The main thing was that his eldest grandson was still a baby in swaddling clothes. The two little fellows in front of him were exactly the same. They were eloquent and had sweet mouths. They were not likable!
Ever since they came to the capital, Tang Tang and Si Bao had always been the center of attention. They were already used to that kind of gaze, but this grandmother in front of them looked so amiable. They couldnt help but walk towards her. Tang Tang was also used to acting coquettishly with her mother, directly leaning into Empress Dowagers arms.
MO Ruyue was startled when she saw this.
Tang Tang, dont be rude.
Ming Yue, I dont want to criticize you, but Tang Tang kissed me, her maternal grandmother. Why didnt you let her kiss me?!
The Empress Dowager nced at MO Ruyue from the corner of her eyes, and
MO Ruyue did not say anything more. She watched as Tang Tang coaxed Empress Dowager into a heartyugh.
Younger Sister, its not that I want to criticize you, but why are you still so distant from us? Imperial Mother likes children, and Tang Tang and Si Bao are so obedient and cute.
I just hope that Lin Er can be like Tang Tang and Si Bao one day.
Si Bao and Tang Tang were telling Empress Dowager some interesting stories about their hometown, and Empress Dowager was actually listening with great interest.
As Imperial Concubine Li and MO Ruyue chatted amongst themselves, it was soon lunchtime.
The pce maids served delicious food on the table one by one, causing Tang Tang and Si Bao to stare with wide eyes.
MO Ruyue was afraid that Si Bao and Tang Tang would be rude at the dining table because of their interaction with Empress Dowager. After all, Ji Hong was also at the dining table. She didnt expect the two little fellows to be so well-behaved. If they wanted to eat something, they would call the pce maids behind them sisters, and ask for help to get food for them.
The Empress Dowager ate half an extra bowl of rice because of the two children, which made Ji Hong and Imperial Concubine Li very happy. She rewarded the two children with a bunch of things on the spot.
After the meal, the pce maids took the dishes away. MO Ruyue noticed that one of the pce maids was acting strangely. She couldnt pinpoint what was strange about her, so she kept staring at her.
Suddenly, the pce maid slipped out a dagger from her sleeve and stabbed at Imperial Concubine Li, who was the closest to her. Imperial Concubine Li was currently carrying the Eldest Prince in her arms. MO Ruyue didnt think twice and pounced forward to block the dagger. At the same time, she kicked the pce maid away.
Save the Emperor!
Mother!
Ming Yue!
For a moment) the scene was chaotic. The pce maids who were collecting the dishes were checking the situation. They were so flustered that they broke many dishes on the ground.
The Empress Dowager reacted quickly and immediately pulled Si Bao and Tang
Tang over.
Ji Hong flew to the side of the pce maid and gave her another kick. The guards also brought their knives to the pce maids neck. Seeing that the situation was over, the pce maid bit the poison sac on her teeth and died in a few breaths, bleeding from all seven orifices.
Quickly call the Imperial Doctor!
MO Ruyues left shoulder had been pierced by the pce maid. Her lips were pale from the pain and her head was covered in cold sweat.
Im fine.
However, she had only said two words before she fainted. Following that, her lips quickly turned purple. Clearly, she had been poisoned.
The moment MO Ruyue fainted, she thought to herself, It was no wonder that before the new year, she had a new form for the antidote pill in her mind. She concocted it and put two pills on everyone in the family.
Mother, Mother, wah wah.
Mother!
Si Bao and Tang Tang broke free from the Empress Dowager and ran toward MO Ruyue.
Tang Tang hurriedly took out her little pouch, poured out a pill, and stuffed it into MO Ruyues mouth.
What did you feed him?
Ji Hongs voice was a little loud. He wanted to dig the pill out of MO Ruyues mouth.
Mother. Mother was poisoned. That is an antidote pill.
At this moment, a few imperial physicians ran over quickly. When they arrived, the hats on their heads were tilted, and they could not care less.
The imperial physicians thought that the Emperor, Imperial Consort or
Empress Dowager had been assassinated. When they saw that it was Princess
Ming Yue, they could not underestimate her and quickly went forward to check her pulse.
At this moment, the antidote pill in MO Ruyues mouth had already melted.
How is it?
The Emperor, Empress Dowager, and Imperial Concubine Li were all nervously looking at the results of Doctor Taiyis examination. Imperial Concubine Lis heart was still beating wildly.
If MO Ruyue hadnt blocked it for them, Lin Er would have been the one who
was stabbed. She didnt even dare to imagine the consequences.
At the same time, she prayed that nothing would happen to MO Ruyue. Otherwise, she would not be able to sleep and eat in peace.
The dagger that stabbed Princess Ming Yue was poisoned. Luckily Princess Ming Yue took the antidote pill in time and the poison was temporarily controlled.
Its just that this residual poison
The imperial doctor stuttered and stopped talking, which made Ji Hong unhappy. He wanted to shout at MO Ruyue, but when he thought of how MO Ruyue was still unconscious, Si Bao and Tang Tang panicked and deliberately suppressed their voices.
Just tell me what you have!
The few imperial doctors knelt down one after another,rge beads of sweat appearing on their foreheads.
In the end, the head of the Imperial Academy of Medicine braced himself and said, I cant cure this poison.
What about you guys?
When Ji Hong heard the words of the head of the Imperial Academy of Medicine, he quickly asked the other imperial physicians. In the end, the other imperial physicians lowered their heads even more and were already lying on the ground.
I dont know how to cure this poison.
Hearing this, Ji Hong kicked the head of the Imperial Academy of Medicine who was closest to him.
What use do I have for you trash!
The few imperial physicians quicklyy down again and kowtowed to beg for mercy.
Royal Uncle, I still have the antidote pill.
Si Bao understood and quickly took out two antidote pills from his purse
Seeing this, Tang Tang wanted to take out another pill from her purse, but Si Bao stopped her and waved at her sister with his small hand.
Tang Tang wasnt stupid. They were twins, so they had a tacit understanding. She didnt make any more moves. Her big swollen eyes were filled with tears, and she ran to hold MO Ruyues hand..
Chapter 545 - 545: The Lucly Star of the Royal Family
Chapter 545 - 545: The Lucly Star of the Royal Family
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Why arent youing over to treat Ming Yue? If anything happens to her, bring your heads over!
Seeing Si Bao take out two more antidote pills, Ji Hong heaved a sigh of relief. Since the one before was useful, these two pills were the same as the one before. They would definitely be useful as well.
When the imperial doctors heard Si Bao say that there were still antidote pills, they wanted to look up, but they did not dare to do so under the Emperors pressure. Now that they heard him speak, they all stood up. The headmaster carefully took the two antidote pills from Si Baos hands.
The Empress Dowager saw that none of the imperial doctors could cure the poison. It was indeed useless. She was very angry, let alone the Emperor.
Seeing that the Emperor had ordered the guards to investigate the matter of the pce maid with the dagger, she said to the imperial doctors in a dignified manner, You must do your best to cure Princess Ming Yue. If you need anything, just say it. Even if the pce doesnt have it, you have to find a way to get it from outside.
Understood!
The imperial doctors said in unison. What could they do if they did not obey?
If they had any objections now, they would probably lose their heads.
Fortunately, he still had two antidote pills. With these two antidote pills, there should be no big problem.
The headmaster had asked before. Si Baos two antidote pills were exactly the same as the one that Princess Ming Yue had eaten previously. He was even more at ease.
In the evening, MO Ruyue woke up and felt much better. Imperial Concubine Li was relieved and carried Lin Er back to her bedroom.
The Empress Dowager was already old. After the previous shock, she was also very tired. When she left, she lett the nanny and the pce maid behind to take care of MO Ruyue.
Si Bao and Tang Tang refused to leave MO Ruyues side. The two children did not quarrel, but their eyes were red.
The two of them were relieved to see MO Ruyue awake.
After the Emperor had settled the matters outside, he heard that MO Ruyue had woken up to see her.
Ming Yue, how are you?
If you feel ufortable, you must tell me.
Its fine. Itll be fine after the residual poison is removed. This small wound wont be a problem.
MO Ruyues voice sounded weak.
Rest well. Dont worry, Ill definitely give you an exnation for what happened today.
Ji Hong had a rough idea of who the pce maid was. It was just that that person was very slippery, but it didnt matter. He would definitely make them pay the price.
Please help me send this letter to Gu Ying.
MO Ruyue took out the letter she had asked Si Bao to write when she had just woken up.
She was seriously injured now and probably wouldnt be able to go back for a day or two. If she didnt write a letter back, Gu Ying and the others would probably be worried to death at home.
However, the letter did not mention that she had been poisoned. It only said that she had suffered a small injury.
Ji Hong took the letter and nodded. Dont worry. You should recuperate well.
Dont worry about anything else. Ill send someone to deliver it immediately.
Although MO Ruyue was now his sister, he could not stay here for too long. It would not be good for their reputations.
It was fine for her, but he already owed her a lot and could not even repay it. He could not bring her more trouble.
Thank you so much!
You and I are siblings. Theres no need to thank me. If you want to thank someone, I should thank you. You saved Lin Ers life again.
Ji Hong took the letter and left, leaving only MO Ruyue, her children, and two other pce maids in the room.
Mother, are you in pain?
Tang Tangs eyes reddened again.
Its okay. Mother doesnt hurt anymore.
In the Cold Pce
Your Liu family has extended their hands far enough.
Youve been in the Cold Pce for so long, yet you still managed to get someone to help you assassinate my child. I really admire you.
When Empress Liu saw that the Emperor hade, her heart was beating fast. She didnt know if their operation today was going smoothly, but it was very strange that the Emperor hade. It was inevitable that she thought it was rted to that matter. In the end, she heard the Emperor say this. ChenQie does not understand what the Emperor is saying.
No matter what, Empress Liu refused to admit it.
You dont have to admit it. Its fine as long as I know.
It seems that Ive been too kind to your Liu family, so much so that your Liu family has stepped on my bottom line time and time again. Do you really think that I, the Emperor, am dead?
The more Ji Hong spoke, the colder his tone became. There was no warmth at all. Instead, it was extremely cold.
ChenQie really doesnt understand what the Emperor is talking about. Has the Emperor misunderstood something?
The Empress looked at the Emperors fierce gaze and took two steps back in fear.
She thought that the Emperor would say something more, but he left without even looking at her.
You will regret this!
Empress Liu could only roar in her heart. Ji Hong returned to the royal study.
Men!
Shua, a man in ck appeared in the room. It was MO Yu, who had not appeared for a long time. It turned out that he had gone from light to dark again.
I hope that the emperor will think twice. This is not the time. If we act now, everything that we have nned will be wasted!
MO Yu knelt down as soon as he appeared.
Pa!
Ji Hong was so angry that he swept the teacup on the table down. He was really holding his breath in his chest.
The next morning, Empress Dowager and Imperial Concubine Li came to visit MO Ruyue. Coincidentally, MO Ruyue was dressing her wound on her shoulder.
Grandmother, Aunt.
Si Bao and Tang Tang greeted Empress Dowager and Imperial Concubine Li. It was also the two of them who insisted that the two children address them as such.
Hey! Be good!
MO Ruyue was afraid that her wound would offend the Empress Dowager and Imperial Concubine Li.
She instructed the doctor beside her, Change itter.
These two female doctors who took care of MO Ruyue were the most outstanding ones among the ones that MO Ruyue had taught before.
The two of them had always respected MO Ruyue, and they were the first to sign up to serve her when they learned that she was injured.
After the two of them arrived, the two pce maids left behind by Empress Dowager did not interfere with MO Ruyues affairs at all. Instead, they focused on serving Si Bao and Tang Tang.
How can that do? You guys change him. This widow is right here. What collision?
The Empress Dowagers face was stern, and the two female doctors naturally obeyed. MO Ruyue could do nothing about it.
Yes, Sister, what nonsense are you talking about? If it werent for you and Lin Er You saved our lives again. I dont Imow how to repay you.
Imperial Concubine Li also gestured to the two female doctors to hurry up and change MO Ruyues dressing.
MO Ruyue thought that since they were both women, there was nothing to hide.
The Empress Dowager and Imperial Concubine Li watched as the medical maid unwrapped the cloth on MO Ruyues shoulder bit by bit. Seeing the ck and hideous wound, the Empress Dowager and Imperial Concubine Li were heartbroken to tears.
Good child, youve suffered!
The Empress Dowagers heart ached for MO Ruyue. Ever since MO Ruyue did her best to save Imperial Concubine Li from a difficultbor and allowed her to give birth to Lin Er, she had a very good impression of MO Ruyue. After spending more than a month with her, she felt that they were even morepatible.
She was the one who had proposed to confer her the title of Princess Ming Yue.
She hade to pay her New Years greetings and suffered such an undeserved disaster. At the same time, it also proved that this child was their royal familys lucky star. She had saved her grandchildren and nieces from many times. From now on, she was their biological daughter! Imperial Concubine Li personally stepped forward to help.
Noble Consort, you cant do that.
MO Ruyue did not dare to let Imperial Concubine Li do it.
I shouldnt say this. Lin Er and my lives were saved by you. Whats wrong with changing your medicine?
Imperial Concubine Li felt that there was nothing she could do to help MO Ruyue other than giving her those yellow and white items. Besides, MO Ruyue was not short of money..
Chapter 546 - 546: I’m Really Blind
Chapter 546 - 546: Im Really Blind
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue did not expect Imperial Concubine Li to be so unassuming. Her poison was almost cured. It was precisely because of this poison that her body had be much weaker. She could only allow them to change her dressing.
Sister, theres a birthmark on your back. Why do I feel that this birthmark looks so familiar?
A birthmark?
MO Ruyue was confused. She really didnt know that she had a birthmark on her back.
Is there?
I dont know yet.
MO Ruyue did not think much of it.
Imperial Concubine Li was just curious, but it was more important to apply medicine to MO Ruyues wound. The two female doctors quickly bandaged MO Ruyues wound.
Si Bao and Tang Tang were chatting with Empress Dowager, and there was a smile on their faces.
As MO Ruyue still needed more rest, Empress Dowager and Imperial Concubine Li did not stay any longer. After the wound was bandaged, they gave a few more instructions and left.
While MO Ruyue was resting, the medical maids and servant girls were guarding outside. There were only the mother and son in the room. MO Ruyue called Si Bao and Tang Tang over.
Come here. Mother told you that you have to check whether there is poison in whatever you eat or drink, but you have to avoid people.
MO Ruyue knew that the two of them were capable of not attracting attention.
Tang Tang and Si Bao nodded.
She couldnt be med for being overly sensitive. The fact that she was stabbed meant that the pce maid had specifically gone to assassinate Imperial Concubine Li and the First Prince. It could also be said that she had been specifically targeted.
Because she was the closest to Imperial Concubine Li at that time, if the dagger had turned slightly, it would have been pointed at her.
He really couldnt stay in the pce!
In the afternoon, Song Jiaxin went to the pce to visit MO Ruyue. She had heard that MO Ruyue had been assassinated in the pce and was extremely worried.
She had wanted toe yesterday, but her family refused to let here. She had waited until today to enter the pce to meet Empress Dowager, so she took the time toe over.
Sigh, youre really unlucky!
However, I really have to thank you. You saved my sister and the First Prince.
It turned out that Imperial Concubine Li was Song Jiaxins cousin.
Are you pregnant?
MO Ruyue looked at Song Jiaxins slightly bulging belly.
Song Jiaxins face turned slightly red from her question and she nodded without hiding anything.
Four months.
Four months!
MO Ruyue thought about it for a moment. Didnt that mean that she was pregnant before she got married? This girl was really bold.
Is your husband treating you well?
Wasnt the ancients quite particr about this aspect? She wondered if her inws would underestimate her because of this.
Alright.
Song Jiaxin knew that MO Ruyue was worried about her. She raised her head proudly and said, Would their family dare to treat me badly? Why dont you take a look at my background?
Not to mention that my father is a General, my cousin is the Emperor, my sister is the Imperial Concubine, and my aunt is the Empress Dowager. With such a powerful background, they dare to treat me badly.
Hahaha, its true. I was worrying too much.
It seemed that her husbands family was really good to her. Otherwise, she wouldnt have been able to maintain her youngdy personality.
This girl was really lucky. She was so lucky that she was jealous.
Then you cant be arrogant because of your favor. You have to know that these chips are all used up.
Hehe, I know. Im already married now. Its not the time to be ignorant.
My husband and mother are also well-educated families. My mother-inw treats me like her own daughter. My husband is the only child, and my mother-inw is counting on me to give birth to children for their family. They cant be better to me.
I dont even need to do anything else. I just have to keep giving birth to their children, and they will be able to worship me as their ancestor.
MO Ruyue smiled.
Song Jiaxin knew that MO Ruyue couldnt sit there for too long, so she left after chatting for a while. However, she was the one talking and MO Ruyue was listening.
Gu Ying received a letter from the capital and opened it happily. After reading it, his face was gloomy and the letter was directly crushed by him.
The letter was written by Si Bao. MO Ruyue said that she was only slightly injured. If she couldnt write the letter, her injuries must be serious.
As for the mastermind behind MO Ruyues assassination, it was almost certain that it was rted to the Empress.
Men, prepare the horses!
Gu Ying told his family that he did not tell them about MO Ruyues injury, lest they worry. He only said that he had to go to the capital for some matters, and that he could bring MO Ruyue and the others back.
He didnt even bring his luggage and rode alone to the capital.
Big Brother is really something. Sister-inw cant even leave for more than two days, and he cant sit still.
He did not know when they would get married.
I think itll be soon.
Wang Tiezhu helped his wife home.
Gu Ying was on his way to the capital city. The pce maids and eunuchs were shuffling.
The Empress in the Cold Pce saw that the pce maid who sent her lunch today had changed, and the anger in her heart rose a lot.
However, it didnt matter. Ji Hong wouldnt be able to be smug for long. When the time came, she would definitely take revenge for the humiliation she suffered today a hundred times over.
Empress Liu secretly calmed her emotions. When she saw that there was only a bowl of in porridge and two salted radishes for lunch today, she knocked over the tray in the pce maids hand and spilled the bowl of porridge on the ground.
The pce maids face was expressionless. She picked up the bowl on the ground and ced it on the tray. She silently retreated and locked the door.
Lunch was delivered, and she could not me anyone else for not eating.
Empress Liu looked at the pce maids smooth movements in astonishment.
She hadnt even lost her temper yet, and she dared to go out and lock the door? Presumptuous! How impudent!
Ill definitely make you regret it!
However, no matter how much she banged on the door and howled, no one paid any attention to her.
At dinner time, it was still the pce maid who sent Empress Liu a bowl of porridge and two salted radish strips.
This time, Empress Liu didnt knock over her te. She had been starving for a whole day. She was so hungry that her chest was sticking to her back. Even if shey down and didnt do anything, she still needed to consume her energy.
Empress Liu endured the humiliation and drank the clear soup with little water. She did not touch the two radish strips.
Even a blind person could see the ruthlessness in her eyes, but the pce maid was unmoved. After she finished eating, she nimbly took the bowl away and went out to lock the door.
Empress Liu, who had slept until midnight, suddenly felt an unbearable pain in her stomach. However, her cries were useless.
Ji Hong. You will die a horrible death! I was really blind
Empress Liu struggled to endure until the fifth watch. Her stomach finally stopped hurting and she seemed to be fine. When it was mealtime, it was the pce maid who brought her food again. Empress Liu remembered that her stomach hurt so muchst night that she wanted to die. She insisted on asking the imperial physician to see her.
After the imperial doctor came over to check her pulse and diagnosed that there was nothing wrong, he left.
Empress Liu didnt believe it, but there was nothing she could do. In the end, she didnt eat for the whole day and only drank some water. However, at night, she had an unbearable abdominal pain.
In just two nights and a day, Empress Liu had lost a lot of weight. She didnt even have the strength to curse.
I want to see the Emperor. I want to see the Emperor.
The serving girl who delivered the food ignored her and never spoke to her. Seeing that the serving girl was about to leave again, Empress Liu used thest bit of strength in her body to knock her over, knocking the tray in her hand to the ground. She picked up a broken bowl on the ground and pressed it against her neck.
I want to see the Emperor, or I will die here.
The pce maid did not even look at her as she retreated. She still locked the door and left, and the porcin piece in Empress Lius hand did not pierce down in the end.
Ah!
She was going crazy..
Chapter 547 - 547: Leaving the Palace
Chapter 547 - 547: Leaving the Pce
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Empress Liu, who was weak in the middle of the night, had just passed her abdominal pain and was struggling on her deathbed. She hadnt eaten or drunk much today, so it wasnt as painful as yesterday. It seemed that Ji Hong wanted to kill her.
ng. Squeak
Suddenly, the door was quietly opened, making Empress Lius weak heart beat rapidly.
Could it be that Ji Hong finally couldnt sit still and sent someone to kill her?
What should she do? Now that she was calling out to no one, no one woulde to care about her. Could it be that she could only wait for death?!
Empress Liu got out of bed and prepared to hide. However, there was no furniture in the Cold Pce. There was only a broken box at the end of the bed and a broken table and chair. There was nothing else. In the end, she had no choice but to hide under the bed.
To think that she, the Empress, was actually forced to do this. When she turned the tables in the future, she would definitely make these people wish they were dead.
The moon was very bright tonight. Some scenes in the house could still be seen vaguely. If someone came over, they would definitely be able to see it.
However, she waited under the bed for a long time, but no one came over. She waited for a while and was about to fall asleep, but no one came in. She wanted to climb out to take a look, but just as she was about to climb out, a head with disheveled hair suddenly stood upside down from the side of the bed.
Ah-Dong!
It was unknown if Empress Liu was frightened or if she had knocked her head on the bed and fainted.
Damn, you cant take a scare. However, you should be able toplete your mission now.
To think that he, a dignified secret guard, actually came up with such a despicable idea in order to avenge the Emperor. Was it easy for him?
MO Yu reached out to check for Empress Lius breathing. She had fainted, but she was still breathing. She then went out and locked the door again, allowing Empress Liu to faint under the bed.
MO Yu returned to his residence as fast as he could and immediately went to sleep. He still had a few more days to go. He had to rest up during the day so that he could fight against the snake and scorpion at night.
Mother, I heard those pce maids and sisters chatting. They said that the
Cold Pce is haunted.
What are ghosts like?
Tang Tang had been very well-behaved these past two days. She had stayed in the room and chatted with MO Ruyue.
The siblings were afraid that MO Ruyue would be bored in the room, so they agreed to go out in shifts to listen to the gossips of the pce maids beforeing back to tell MO Ruyue. Tang Tang heard the pce maids say that the Cold Pce was haunted.
MO Ruyue was speechless.
Who did you hear that from? Theyre all talking nonsense.
In fact, MO Ruyue did not know if ghosts existed. If there were no ghosts, what happened to her was quite consistent. But if there were ghosts, she had not seen anyone else except herself. She did not know how to exin it to her child.
Si Bao has strange powers and chaotic gods.
Si Bao wanted to use what he had learned to teach his sister not to listen to the nonsense of the pce maids. It was simply nonsense.
However, Tang Tang covered her mouth as soon as she started.
I beg you, Brother. I wont say anything, and neither will you.
MO Ruyue watched as the two little clowns yed around in front of her. She thought that it was time for them to leave the pce. Her poison had already been cured, and that small injury was not worth mentioning to her. She had suffered much more serious injuries in the past, and she still had to carry out her mission.
She also wanted to go home as soon as possible. If she did not go home soon, Gu Ying would definitely be very anxious. There was also a greenhouse in the vige. There should be quite a number of vegetables in the greenhouse that could be taken out of the greenhouse, such as garlic. If she did not go back, they would definitely not know what level of vegetables in the greenhouse could be eaten.
At this moment, Qiu Shi came in from outside.
Princess, First Master hase to the capital.
MO Ruyue nodded and suddenly came back to her senses. Wasnt the Eldest Master Qiu Shi was talking about Gu Ying?
In the family, only Gu Ying and the others were called Old Master.
What is he doing here?
MO Ruyue said as she sat up and prepared to get off the bed. Chun Hua,e over andb my hair.
If Gu Ying really came, then she really had to hurry out.
When Ji Hong heard about the pce being haunted, he called MO Yu over.
Did you cause that ghost?
Ji Hong didnt even raise his head as he continued to approve the memorial in his hand.
MO Yu knew that the Emperor was asking him a question, so he quickly answered honestly.
Replying to the Emperor, it was this servant who did it.
Didnt the Emperor ask this servant to avenge Princess Ming Yue? Ji Hong almostughed out of anger at MO Yu. You can vent your anger like
Of course, Emperor. You dont know, but the first time, she was so frightened by this servant that she fainted.
The second time, she was so scared that she didnt eat or drink much water. If this continues, well be able to achieve our small goal.
Their small goal for Empress Liu was to make her fall ill in the Cold Pce and then die of illness.
This way, even if the Liu family knew that they were the ones who did it, they would not be able to find a clear reason. Even if they were angry, they would be furious.
So this is a good idea.
Ji Hong was still reading the memorials on the table, multitasking.
Hehe, I dare not.
Ji Hong didnt know whether tough or cry when he heard MO Yu being humble.
Forget it, this was pretty good.
Emperor, Princess Ming Yue is leaving the pce.
A young eunuch ran in to report to the Emperor. The young eunuch lowered his head and did not dare to look at MO Yu.
He dared to run in at this time because the Emperor had ordered that as long as there was anything rted to Princess Ming Yue, he must report it immediately.
Hearing this, Ji Hong finally put down the pen in his hand. He hurriedly stood up, got off the dragon throne, and walked out of the hall. At the same time, he asked the young eunuch who came to report.
Did Ming Yue say why she wanted to leave the Pce? Princess Ming Yue didnt say so this servant doesnt know.
The little eunuch had to jog to keep up with Ji Hongs pace.
At the same time, Empress Dowager and Imperial Concubine Li also received the same report. The three of them rushed in the same direction.
The three of them arrived at MO Ruyues bedroom at the same time.
Sister, you havent recovered yet.
Imperial Concubine Li was very concerned about MO Ruyues injury. After all, MO Ruyue had saved her and Lin Er. If Lin Er was not still young and could not leave her, she would have stayed with MO Ruyue for the entire day.
Thats right, Ming Yue, stay for a few more days.
The Empress Dowager also asked her to stay.
Mother, Ive already recovered. Theres only a little scar, its not a problem.
Can that be called a little scar?
When Empress Dowager thought of the wound on MO Ruyues shoulder, she felt pain in her own shoulder.
Its really fine. Im much better. I dont even feel pain anymore.
MO Ruyue was not lying.
Back then, MO Ruyue had kicked her when the maidservants dagger had stabbed her, so the dagger had only grazed her skin and did not hurt her bones.
The wound had already scabbed over. As long as it scabbed over, it would heal quickly.
Ji Hong did not say anything. He did not ask why MO Ruyue suddenly left the pce. In fact, he did not need to ask to know that he had already received the news that Gu Ying had entered the capital. It must be because of him. He did not want to ask, in case he felt stifled.
At this moment, he suddenly knew how the parents who raised their daughters felt when they married off their daughters.
Seeing that MO Ruyue really wanted to go, the three of them did not stop her. They asked the pce maids to serve her well and gave her a lot of tonics and other things. Two of them followed her to the princess manor..
Chapter 548 - 548: Bragging Without Drawing a Script
Chapter 548 - 548: Bragging Without Drawing a Script
I ranstator: Dragon Boat I ranstatlon Editor: Dragon Boat Iranstatlon
MO Ruyue had just arrived at the princess manor when she saw Gu Ying. Before she could even speak to Gu Ying, someone came to look for him.
After the soldier reported the matter to Gu Ying, Gu Yings expression became more solemn. He turned to MO Ruyue and helped her adjust her cloak. MO Ruyue did not feel embarrassed at all. She felt that Gu Yings actions made her feel quitefortable.
Wait for me to finish my business ande back. Have a good rest at home.
Gu Ying was very unwilling to leave, but he had to go to see the person who asked him to.
When he saw MO Ruyue earlier, he really wanted to pull her into his arms. He wanted to see if there was anything wrong with her, and there were many things he wanted to say to her.
Seeing that she was alright now, his heart rxed a lot. However, her face was paler than before. She must have suffered a lot when she was injured. You dont have to worry about me. Im fine now. Hurry up and do your thing.
MO Ruyue saw that the messenger was a soldier, so she guessed that the one looking for Gu Ying was the great general. He really could not dy.
After returning to the pce, MO Ruyue saw Si Bao and Tang Tang following her closely. Ever since they came to the capital, they had always been with her, even in the pce.
We should be going back in two days. If you want to go out and y, go out and y now.
MO Ruyue felt that since they hade to the capital, it would be beneficial for the two children to go out and broaden their horizons.
Of course, she was not at ease letting the child go far away to y. There were only a few inns and shops selling all kinds of things on the roadside.
As a five-year-old child, of course, he wanted to go out and y.
However, they also wanted to apany their mother because their mother was injured and could not go out. She must be very anxious at home alone.
Be good, go.
Dont you still have to bring gifts for your friends in the vige?
Mother is not in a hurry at home. Arent there still nannies and the others?
In the end, Tang Tang and Si Bao couldnt resist the temptation of the outside world. Apanied by the maids, servants, and nannies, they went down the street.
Once the two children reached the street, they first went to various shops to buy things. The two children did not spend money recklessly. Before they bought anything, they would ask how much it cost and only buy it if they thought it was suitable.
After buying a bunch of things, the two children were not stupid enough to let the servants carry them away. Instead, they let two of the servants send these things home first.
Young Miss, Young Master, the servants will follow you. These things are not tiring for servants to carry.
The two servants did not dare to leave.
Young Miss and Young Master can ask the shopkeeper to send these things back for us.
Chun Hua reminded the two children.
That would be great.
Si Bao didnt want the two servants to go back either. His mother would probably be worried if she found outter.
After reporting his address, the shopkeepers eyes widened. He was wondering why the two children looked so familiar. It turned out that they looked like Gu Ying.
The shopkeeper happened to know Gu Ying, and he liked Si Bao and Tang Tang very much. He patted his chest and smiled warmly at them, Young Miss and Young Master can rest assured. I will definitely get someone to send these things to the princess manor. Thank you for your trouble, shopkeeper.
Si Bao thanked him politely.
Little Lord is too polite. This is what we should do.
After the two children left the shop, they went straight to the inn to buy some delicious food for MO Ruyue.
Their mothersplexion was still not good. She needed to nourish herself.
Brother, did Aunt Qin also open a herbal dish shop in Jincheng?
Lets go to the herbal dish shop and order some herbal dishes for Mother. Yes.
Granny, Sister Chun Hua, we want to go to a medicinal cuisine shop.
Si Bao and Tang Tang were very obedient this time. Wherever they wanted to go, they would ask the granny and Chun Hua first. They would only go after they agreed.
Granny and Chun Hua felt that the Young Miss and Master had suddenly be much more sensible because of the Princesss injury.
The two of them knew that the medicinal cuisine shop was one of the princess businesses. Although they were partners, it was still their own business. Of course, this servant will bring Young Miss and Young Master over.
When they arrived at the entrance of the shop, the two children saw that the shop was much smaller than the one in their town.
Can you make money at such a young age?
Tang Tang felt that this herbal dish shop was too smallpared to the size of their town.
There are quite a lot of people who went in.
Si Bao gave a fair answer.
When the two children were chatting as adults, the granny and Chun Hua would not interrupt.
MO Ruyue had specifically instructed them to let the children think about everything on their own when they were not asked.
Tsk, where did this country bumpkine from?
Just as Tang Tang and Si Bao were about to enter the shop, a seven or eight-year-old young master dressed in luxurious clothes walked past them and scolded them.
Brother, are they talking about us?
Tang Tang blinked her big eyes and looked at Si Bao. It should be. Only the two of us are from the countryside.
Lets go in and buy some herbal dishes for Mother.
Si Bao felt that there was no need to pay attention to such rude children.
Yes.
The waiter guarding the door was curious when he saw two four or five-year-old children enter. As expected, he saw a few maidservants and manservants follow behind them.
Ever since Wei Yi and Wei Er had followed MO Ruyue, they had been dressed in in clothes. Thus, to outsiders, they looked like servants and did not know that they were guards.
Young Miss and Young Master, pleasee in! Do you know what shop this is?
The waiter smiled warmly and asked gently.
I know. Isnt it written on the door que that its a medicinal dish?
The waiter couldnt help but be surprised when he heard this. These two children could read?
Yes, yes. What would you like to order?
By the way, do you two know many medicinal dishes that many people cant eat? For example, Young Miss and Young Master have many taboos at a young age.
The waiter kindly reminded them. He saw that none of the servants of the two little masters made a sound, so he said this. He was afraid that the two children would order something randomly. If something went wrong, their shop would not be able to bear the responsibility.
Of course I know.
These are not difficult for me. When I eat medicinal cuisine, I definitely dont know what medicinal cuisine is.
Si Bao felt helpless when he heard his sisters words. Although his sister was right, could they keep a low profile?
Can I trouble the waiter to pack a bowl of snakehead tofu soup for us?
The snakehead tofu soup was very good for healing wounds.
When the waiter heard Tang Tangs words, he wanted to refute her. This herbal dish shop in the capital was a precedent. This little kid was so arrogant. She actually said that she didnt know what herbal dishes were when she ate them.
Now that Si Bao had ordered, she didnt n to say anything. After all, these two children were good-looking.
Youre bragging without a draft.
Si Bao and Tang Tang turned around and saw the seven or eight-year-old young master looking at them with disdain.
Tang Tang was furious.
They didnt know this person at all, but this person had always disliked them?
Mother said that it was intolerable. She had already tolerated him once, but he still came. She couldnt tolerate it.
Do you know us?
We dont know you anyway.
People like you are called self-righteous. You are a frog at the bottom of a well and think that everyone else is like you.
Si Bao stopped persuading his sister.
Granny Rong and Chun Hua had wanted to speak up for their Little Miss and Little Master, but seeing how powerful their Little Miss and Little Master were, they didnt say anything..
Chapter 549 - 549: My Heart Is Wherever You Are
Chapter 549: My Heart Is Wherever You Are
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Presumptuous! Do you know who our Little Young Master is?
Hurry up and kneel down and apologize to our Young Master. Otherwise, youll have a good time today.
Chun Hua and Granny Rong didnt say anything, but the other partys servant spoke.
Wei Yi.
Chun Hua didnt want to argue with a brainless ve like the other party. It was too demeaning.
Wei Yi immediately went forward and sealed the ves mute acupoint. The servant suddenly realized that he could not speak, and his eyes widened in fear.
Even the Young Master realized that his servant could not speak.
You damned ve, what did you do to him?
After saying that, the young master pointed at Si Bao and Tang Tang and said fiercely, If you know whats good for you, quickly treat my servant. Otherwise, dont even think about walking out of here today!
Ill definitely get my father to send someone to throw you all into jail!
After saying that, he waved his hand at the other servants behind him. What are you waiting for? Take them down!
The few servants behind him rushed forward and wanted to take Tang Tang and Si Bao down, but they were all kicked to the ground by Wei Yi. Furthermore, the servants were all immobilized.
The Young Master panicked when he saw that all his servants had stopped moving.
You actually killed someone. Youre dead.
Tang Tang and Si Baopletely ignored the Young Masters howls and turned to Granny Rong and Chun Hua.
Granny, Sister Chun Hua, we didnt cause trouble first. Hes alreadying to arrest me and brother and throw us into jail.
Tang Tang felt wronged. They had already kept a low profile this time and didnt want to cause trouble.
When she was at the door, she ignored him. In the end, when she came in, she met him again and even bit him.
This servant knows.
However, themotion here had already attracted the attention of everyone in the shop.
Seeing this, the shopkeeper quickly came over to ask about the situation. The bystanders told the shopkeeper everything that had happened.
The shopkeeper naturally knew that the Young Master was the one who caused trouble first, but now that all the servants around him had been beaten to the ground, this matter was a little difficult to deal with.
At this moment, the waiter who had packed the snakehead fish tofu soup for Tang Tang and the others came over with the packed soup. He was also very surprised to see the situation at the scene, but he heaved a sigh of relief when he saw the shopkeeper. With the shopkeeper around, he did not have to care about these things.
Young Miss, Young Master, this is the snakehead tofu soup you ordered.
Chun Hua paid the silver and took the soup.
Young Lady and Young Master, please take care.
The shopkeeper said politely to Si Bao and Tang Tang, wanting to personally send them out of the shop.
She then said to Granny Rong, who looked like a housekeeper, Bring your Young Miss and Young Master home quickly. That Young Master is not someone to be trifled with.
Its okay. Were not to be trifled with. He was the one who found trouble with me first.
If they find trouble with you, just let them find us.
My house is on the east side of Fushun Street.
Tang Tang felt that this shop belonged to her family after all, and she couldnt let otherse and ruin it.
After saying that, she hurried home. She was anxious to let her mother drink the fish soup.
Only after they left did the shopkeeper remember that the youngdy had mentioned that there was only one house on the east side of Fu Shun Street, and it was Princess Ming Yues temporary residence.
Hiss-
Aiya, look at my old and muddle-headed eyes. I actually didnt see that it was one of the small owners!
The innkeeper ordered people to pack up the servants and servants lying on the ground and send them back to their own residence. They also sent the Little Young Master back. He hurriedly headed towards Fu Shun Street. He had to personally apologize to Princess Ming Yue.
This little boss was bullied by outsiders in his own shop. It was all because he, the shopkeeper, did not do his job well.
In the princess manor, Gu Ying was talking to MO Ruyue.
He had indeed been summoned by the general earlier. He had used the fastest speed to finish what they had to do and quickly returned.
When she came back, she was happy to know that the two little fellows had gone to the streets. It was a good time for the two of them to be alone.
Arent you going to ask me what Im going out for?
Gu Ying felt that MO Ruyue was not interested in anything he did.
Then what did you do?
MO Ruyue was used to having her own space and her own things to do. She heard that Gu Ying wanted to ask him, so she gave him face and asked.
Our surveince of the Liu family
MO Ruyue then realized that although Gu Ying was neither an official nor a general, he would still help the Emperor do things that were inconvenient to do in public.
But Gu Ying himself said that he was willing to do all this mainly because of the general, not the emperor.
MO Ruyue knew that he was doing this mainly for her.
She never thought that she would one day be lucky enough to meet a man who was devoted to her.
Gu Ying looked at MO Ruyues gentle smile and felt warm in his heart. He mustered his courage and held MO Ruyues hand. He was so excited that he was trembling. He was afraid that MO Ruyue would shake him off or think that he was too rash.
In the end, MO Ruyue didnt seem to have any intention of shaking him off. Instead, she just looked at him with a smile.
Gu Ying was even more courageous now. He held MO Ruyues small hand in his palm.
After we go back this time, lets hurry up and pay our respects to Master. In the future, its better not toe to a ce like capital.
Every time she came, there would always be some things that she let go of, but she would always be in danger.
Alright, I dont likeing either.
I dont want you to chase after me in less than two days.
MO Ruyue said with a smile. She thought that Gu Ying would be embarrassed, but he raised his head to look at her.
Youre my everything. Wherever you are, my heart will be there.
After saying this, the two of them stared at the air and fell into silence. The distance between the two of them was getting closer and closer.
Mother, were back!
Tang Tangs voice scared Gu Ying so much that he quickly sat back down and loosened his grip on MO Ruyues hand.
Mother, I bought you some snakehead tofu soup. Drink it while its hot.
Uncle is back!
When Si Bao and Tang Tang saw Gu Ying now, they were not as annoyed as when they first saw him. Instead, they were quite happy to see him now.
Because they felt that their uncle was still very safe at home.
Aiyo, Tang Tang and Si Bao are so filial. Im hungry.
Gu Ying deliberately said as he took the food box and opened it to take out the fish soup, pretending to drink it.
Uncle, just drink a small bowl. Were going to eatter. If you drink too much, you wont be able to eat.
Tang Tangs eyes darted around as she personally took the bowl and spoon from Chun Hua.
Ill scoop it for you.
Tang Tang scooped half a bowl and pushed it to Gu Ying, then pushed the rest to MO Ruyue.
Mother, quickly drink it. This ckfish soup has a long wound. MO Ruyue did not refuse and started drinking from the big bowl.
Gu Ying also finished the small bowl of soup in one gulp. The shopkeeper of the princess medicinal cuisine shop requests an audience. The maidservant outside the door came in to report.
MO Ruyue thought that the shopkeeper knew that she was here, so he came over.
Since he was already here, there was no reason to not see him. He could ask about the recent situation in the shop.
Let him in.
Yes.
Si Bao and Tang Tangs expressions turned ugly when they heard that.
Could it be the Young Master was really causing trouble in herbal dish shop?
Granny Rong finally had the time to tell MO Ruyue and Gu Ying what had happened at the herbal dish shop.
Hearing this, Gu Ying immediatelyforted the two uneasy children.
Dont be afraid. Youve done a good job..
Chapter 550 - 550: The Best Big Brother
Chapter 550: The Best Big Brother
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
At this moment, the shopkeeper also arrived.
As soon as he entered, he knelt down in MO Ruyues direction.
This servant greets Princess Ming Yue.
No need for formalities.
This servant doesnt dare. This servant is here to ask for forgiveness from the princess.
The innkeeper really didnt dare to get up. Todays matter could be considered to have wronged their Young Miss and Young Master.
Its nothing. Get up first. Its not your fault for what happened today.
Whose child is that?
Wei Yi stepped forward and helped the shopkeeper up.
Thank you.
The shopkeeper hurriedly thanked him in a low voice. That is the young master of the Zhao family.
Ill handle this matter, you dont have to worry about it.
Gu Ying said to MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue nodded and left the matter to him.
She asked the shopkeeper about the situation of the herbal dish shop and let him go back.
The next day, the Zhao family came to the princess pce with many gifts to apologize.
MO Ruyue had left this matter to Gu Ying to handle, but she did not show up.
She didnt know how Lord Zhao apologized, but she knew that he had paid a huge price this time.
Not only that, after Lord Zhao returned from the princess pce, he beat up his youngest son, who had always been in so much pain that he looked like an eyeball.
If he didnt do anything about this child, he might offend some noble person in
the tuture.
After another two days, MO Ruyues injuries were almost healed. The scab on her shoulder was slowly falling off.
Almost everyone in the family was there. Although there were people taking care of them at home, Qin Qingyan and Qin Qingshuang were still worried. If they didnt go back soon, Doctor Qin and Qin Rouwan would be worried.
On the tenth day of the lunar month, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying brought their children and servants back to West River Vige.
After resting for a day, MO Ruyue wanted to go to the vige to check out the situation in the shed, but Gu Ying insisted that she should pay her master a New Year visit first.
Doctor Qin and Qin Rouwan were already waiting at home. Even Qin Haoyu was obediently waiting at home.
Doctor Qin knew something was wrong with MO Ruyue the moment he saw her. He checked her pulse and found that she had been injured and poisoned.
What happened?
MO Ruyue had no choice but to tell him the whole story.
Master, those things have been packed up. There is another very important thing to tell you today.
Gu Ying felt that it was better for him to speak about this matter.
Yes, tell me.
Doctor Qin stroked his beard, as if he didnt hear Gu Ying calling him master.
Xiao Yue and I are preparing to get married soon. I hope Master can choose an auspicious day for us.
Pfft-
Qin Rouwan spat out a mouthful of tea.
What did you say? Is this what the two of you want?
Fortunately, Doctor Qin did not drink any water at this moment. Otherwise, he would have spat it out like his daughter.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying nodded.
Hahaha, thats great news! Ill leave this matter to Master. I guarantee that Ill choose the best auspicious day for you?
In fact, everyone had witnessed how well Gu Ying treated MO Ruyuest year. They only wanted to see what MO Ruyue meant. This was MO Ruyues own business, and no one else could interfere.
In their eyes, MO Ruyue was the best woman in the world and was worthy of the best man.
Now that they were together, they were happy to see it happen.
Gu Ying would definitely take care of these two children sincerely.
The two pitiful children lost their mother and father at such a young age. Now, they had a mother and a father.
Look, if youre all ready, why dont we have an earlier date? How about the
16th of the first month?
Doctor Qin knew that MO Ruyue was not a person who cared about trifles, but she was still a youngdy. Now that Gu Ying was in front of her, he, as MO Ruyues master and elder, had to think about his youngdy.
Since Gu Ying was the one who said this, it was obvious that MO Ruyue had agreed to it. Therefore, he tried to say this. If the two of them agreed, it meant that they were almost ready.
The main reason was that he was afraid that the two children would reach an irreversible step, so he was in a hurry to get married. He could not choose too far back and dy things.
Gu Ying couldnt wait to get married tomorrow. Of course, he didnt have any objections. His first reaction was to see MO Ruyues opinion.
MO Ruyue thought for a moment. After the fifteenth day of the first lunar month, Ill be busy nting rice. Ill have to build shops on both sides of the mountain tunnel. Gu Ying will also have to devote himself to teaching his students. Ill be busier as the days go by. The sixteenth day of the first lunar month is the most suitable day. Lets set it on the sixteenth day of the first lunar month.
Doctor Qin listened to MO Ruyues exnation and felt that he was overthinking things.
Thats good. Have you done your wedding dress? How many more days do we have?
Qin Rouwan was more worried about this matter.
MO Ruyue had not prepared any wedding dress. She had decided to get married on the spur of the moment and had gone to the capital for five days. She had almost forgotten about it.
Aunt Zhou should be able to make it in a hurry.
During lunch, everyone at the table was talking about MO Ruyue and Gu Yings wedding. They were allughing and talking about the details of the uing wedding.
The children listened together. Qin Haoyan immediately understood who they were talking about and was happy for them.
Qin Haoyu, Tang Tang, and Si Bao only knew that someone was getting married, but they didnt know who it was.
They often heard the adults talking about who would get married and what they would do, but they didnt take it seriously.
After dinner, Qin Rouwan assured MO Ruyue that she would prepare all the necessary tools for the wedding. After all, she was more experienced.
Then Ill have to trouble Sister to worry about it. We wont stay any longer. We still have other things to do at home.
Doctor Qin and Qin Rouwan didnt stay any longer. They had important matters to attend to.
MO Ruyue had been thinking about her next words on the way back. It was only when she was at the Qin residence that she remembered that she had not told Si Bao and Tang Tang about her marriage with Gu Ying.
There were only the three of them in the carriage. Gu Ying was driving the carriage outside.
Si Bao, Tang Tang, Mother has something to tell you.
What is it, Mother?
Tang Tang and Si Bao were all ears.
Do you want a father?
Tang Tang and Si Bao looked at each other. It would be a lie to say that they didnt want a father. Seeing that other children had a father, they actually wanted a father too. Can you let Uncle be our father?
Tang Tang asked softly.
Why?
MO Ruyue wanted to hear the little girls thoughts. She hadnt thought of a good excuse yet, but the little girl had already mentioned Gu Ying.
Because Uncle is our biological uncle, we can also call him father. Uncle treats Brother and me well. He looks very simr to us. Most importantly, if Mother and Uncle get married, they dont have to get married.
Sister is right.
Si Bao looked at MO Ruyue and asked, Mother, are you going to marry Uncle?
Well, do you have any objections?
Just say it.
MO Ruyue didnt expect the two children to be so easy to talk about. She had even racked her brains just now.
No, I dont.
No, I dont.
Tang Tang sat closer to MO Ruyue and pressed her against her.
Mother, after you and Uncle get married, quickly give me a younger brother or sister.
MO Ruyue was a little embarrassed. I dont have the final say. It depends on whether there are any babies willing toe to our house and be your younger siblings.
Definitely.
As long as Mother gives birth to younger brothers and sisters for me, I promise to be the best elder sister.
Brother, you must be the best big brother, right?
Si Bao suddenly sat up straight.
Of course.
Hahaha!
Chapter 551 - 551: The Big Wedding
Chapter 551: The Big Wedding
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gu Ying, who was driving the carriage outside, heard the conversation between the mother and son in the carriage clearly. Theughter in the carriage made the corners of his mouth curl up.
If he liked younger siblings, he would definitely work hard to give birth to two for them.
After returning home, Gu Ying and MO Ruyue told everyone about this.
Of course, everyone in the family was very happy. Wasnt this what they had been looking forward to?
Granny Rong and Granny Yan immediately patted their chests and said to MO
Ruyue, Leave the matter of the wedding dress to this old servant!
Aunt Zhou was not to be outdone. She also wanted to prepare a wedding dress for MO Ruyue. Ever since she came to the Qin family, she had been the one who made the clothes for MO Ruyue and the children. The clothes fit the whole family well and they liked them very much.
Therefore, she had to make the wedding dress.
In the end, MO Ruyue decided to let the three of them work together to make the preparations.
As for Qin Qingyan and Qin Qingshuang, they were asked to write invitations again.
ording to MO Ruyues idea, it would be fine to just have a lively meal with her family. However, her family had always denied it. After all, marriage was a joyous asion. How could they just casually do it?
MO Ruyue thought that they were right. If she didnt tell them, outsiders wouldnt know that she and Gu Ying were married.
Just like those arrogantmoners back then, even if she became a princess, because she did not return to the vige with great fanfare, those people thought that she was using a chicken feather as an arrow.
Then you guys should follow the normal procedure. I dont know about these things either. If you dont know, you can ask Mrs. Wang and Mrs. Chen. Mrs.
Chens familys Aunt Chen must know a lot. After all, shes still young.
Got it. Sister-inw, you should rest more. Your shoulder is still injured. Qin Qingfei couldnt do anything, and the others didnt allow her to interfere.
She just watched the show and felt very happy.
Big Brother and Sister-inw are finally getting married!
This matter also blew up in the vige.
The Qin family was preparing for MO Ruyue and Gu Yings wedding, and even Doctor Qin was no exception.
On the other hand, MO Ruyue seemed to be the most rxed person apart from teaching those nominal disciples.
She went to the vige to see how the greenhouses were doing.
The yellow garlic grew very well. The yellow garlic was like chives. It could continue to grow after being cut.
The vegetable seeds had also grown into small chicken feathers. They looked fresh and tender. Whether it was stir-fried, cold, or added to soup, they were absolutely delicious.
How is it? Can we sell all our vegetables now?
The old vige chief followed closely behind MO Ruyue.
Ever since the vige had built the shed and nted the seeds, the old vige chief had paid the most attention to the shed in the vige. The rest of the work had been handed over to Wang Tiezhu.
Its fine, but can you wait a few days? When I get married to Gu Ying, Ill sell all these to my family for a banquet.
When MO Ruyue was talking about her marriage, she didnt feel shy at all. She was very natural, as if she was eating and sleeping.
Sure, sure, sure!
Ill tell the vigers in a while.
The old vige chief apanied MO Ruyue throughout the entire process and visited every shed in the vige. Then, he went to look for the vigers. The vigers naturally agreed and even said that they would give all the goods in the shed to MO Ruyue for free.
MO Ruyue was the one who had taught him how to build this shed.
MO Ruyue did not know that the vigers were going to give her vegetables. She had just returned to the princess manor and saw that her family was very busy. She stood beside Gu Ying and watched him write an invitation. The one he was writing now was for the Emperor.
When Gu Ying wrote this invitation, he was in a very good mood.
Although the Emperor would note personally, he still had to write. No matter what, MO Ruyue was his own sister, so he had to inform him of the marriage.
MO Ruyue looked at Gu Ying who was so happy. She really thought that he didnt know what he was so happy about.
What a childish temper.
Suddenly, a maidservant came to report that Foreman Fang was looking for her.
Let him in.
I wonder why Foreman Fang is here now?
Foreman Fang greeted MO Ruyue when he arrived. Princess, its like this. There are still a few days before the 16th day of the first lunar month. My workerse to me every day to ask if I can start work. They say that they have nothing better to do at home, so its better to start work earlier so that we can finish work earlier. Thats why Im here to ask Princess for instructions.
MO Ruyue understood what he meant. Those people felt that it was better toe out and earn money than to stay at home.
If you all want toe to work earlier, thats fine too. Its up to you.
Go and get the roll of paper from the blue and white porcin bottle in the study room, MO Ruyue said to Chun Hua.
Yes.
Chun Hua quickly brought over the things MO Ruyue wanted. MO Ruyue nced at them and passed them to Foreman Fang.
This is the house I want. If you have any questions,e and ask me.
Foreman Fang took it with both hands and told MO Ruyue that they would start work the next day. He would go back and inform his workers after receiving permission.
MO Ruyue knew that the workers under Foreman Fang were very willing to spend money on food and drinks. As Foreman Fangs skills were good, the price he charged was high, and the workers under him were paid more, so he was not stingy.
MO Ruyue asked Wang Tiezhu to go to the vige to promote the food. Anyone who wanted to earn a little money and had their own specialty food could set up a stall there.
Now, on the other side of the Youshan Tunnel, they could set up their stalls at the exit of Lianshan County.
The sanatorium made a lot of fried chicken, duck, and skewers every day. They could also push the cart to Lianshan County to sell them.
The vigers responded to Wang Tiezhus arrangements very enthusiastically and even tried to understand the situation.
Now that the tunnel had been opened up, MO Ruyues hospital had more patients than before. It was not even the fifteenth day of the first lunar month yet, but there were already many patientsing to see the doctor.
In the past, it was said that people did not look for a doctor or see a doctor in the first month of the year. They were afraid that the meaning was not good and they had to take medicine and see a doctor all year round.
Among the patients who came, there were very few who specialized in gynecology. Almost none of them. Even the Luo Geniuses of Yongyuan didnt let MO Ruyue see them personally.
Previously, during the New Year, they had returned to their hometown. After returning, they brought another person with them. This person was also their friend and a doctor. Aftering, he felt that West River Vige was very beautiful and decided not to leave.
MO Ruyue was happy to see this happen, and even asked them to help find two more doctors like this toe to the vige, so that the whole family could settle down.
A dayter, in the imperial pce of the capital, Ji Hong looked at the invitation in his hand with mixed feelings.
The Empress Dowager and Imperial Concubine Li also knew about it, and they were both happy for MO Ruyue.
Imperial Concubine Li quickly sent someone to write a letter to congratte her and gave her many gifts. However, she could not go herself because Lin Er was still too young.
The Emperor and Empress Dowager could not go either. The situation in the pce was tense because of the crazy Empress Liu.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying did not know about this. Ji Hong did not want them to know about it, lest it would disrupt their marriage.
The days passed by in a hustle and bustle. Soon, it was the fifteenth day of the first lunar month. The next day was Gu Ying and MO Ruyues wedding day.
Princess, please try on this wedding dress first and see if there are any areas that dont fit you correctly. This old servant can also make changes in advance.
Granny Rong was holding a set of wedding clothes that she, Granny Yan, and Aunt Zhou had worked together to get MO Ruyue to try them on..
Chapter 552 - 552: Where Will The Princess Put Her Face?
Chapter 552: Where Will The Princess Put Her Face?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue knew what they meant. They had actually made quite a few clothes for her, so how could there be any deviation in size? However, she still tried them on.
As soon as they were dressed, Granny Rong and the other two, together with
Chun Hua, were stunned.
Its too beautiful!
Yue Yue, can Ie in? I have something to tell you.
It was Gu Ying.
Come in.
The moment Gu Ying entered the room, he saw MO Ruyue in her wedding dress and was shocked!
What do you want?
MO Ruyue was embarrassed by his stare.
Gu Ying came back to his senses. No matter how unwilling he was, he still had to say it.
He said with some difficulty, General, its urgent. The Liu family colluded with foreign bandits to rebel. I I have to go to the border. Our marriage may have to be canceled. Im sorry.
MO Ruyue raised her head in shock. Gu Ying showed her the urgent letter from the Great General.
The Great General had told him to go tomorrow after he got married, but he didnt want to let MO Ruyue feel that her husband had just left after he got married.
MO Ruyue had also read the sentence, but her choice was the same as Gu Yings.
However, was he going to leave without even having sex on the wedding day?!
She also knew that it was unrealistic for Gu Ying not to go. When he retired, he said that he would still go back if the battlefield needed him.
Everyone knew what Gu Ying had said about his hidden illness, so it was even more impossible for him not to go.
Gu Ying didnt look like a timid person. If he did, MO Ruyue wouldnt like him anymore.
Gu Ying pulled MO Ruyue into his arms.
Im sorry.
If you donte back, Ill marry someone else! said MO Ruyue.
The next morning, Gu Ying got dressed and got on his horse, ready to go to the border.
Doctor Qin and Qin Rouwan felt that they were MO Ruyues family members, so they came early in the morning. When they saw Gu Ying, who was ready to go, they were both confused.
Since he had only received the generals urgent order yesterday, he did not have time to inform his rtives and friends.
However, he still treated his friends and family as if they were friends.
Whats going on? Where is he going? Is he not going to marry you?
Qin Rouwan saw that Gu Ying didnt look like he was riding a horse to wee the bride. He was wearing a soldiers uniform. It was obvious that he was going to war!
He received an urgent order from the Great General.
Gu Ying waited for another two hours. More than half of the invited guests had arrived. MO Ruyue urged him to hurry up and set off. Hurry up and leave. Dont waste your time here.
Ill leave after saying a few words.
He didnt want MO Ruyue to face all the guests questions alone, so he had stayed behind to exin why he had left.
Gu Ying didnt get off his horse in front of the guests. He just sat on the horse and looked a little further so that the guests below could see him clearly.
Today is the day of my wedding with MO Ruyue, and I invited all of you to attend the wedding banquet. However, Im going to slip of the tongue today.
However, since everyone is already here today, pleasee to the residence for a chat. When I return, I will invite everyone to the wedding banquet again.
At that time, I, Gu Ying, will punish myself with three cups of wine to express my apology.
After this Xue goes on the expedition, I hope that the vigers will take good care of MO Ruyue and her child. This Xue is extremely grateful!
Its gettingte, excuse me!
After saying that, Gu Ying turned around and gave MO Ruyue a deep look, then turned around and galloped away without looking back. The guests came back to their senses after Gu Ying left.
Was it better to enter the residence or not?
The groom had already gone out to fight. It would be too bad for them to go in and gather, right?
If he didnt go in and turned around to leave, where would Princess Ming Yue put her face?
At this moment, many people thought of MO Ruyues predecessor. Although not many people had seen him before, everyone knew that he had gone to the battlefield on the day he married MO Ruyue and never returned. Now, Gu Ying was like this. This was really.
The scene instantly fell silent.
At this moment, MO Ruyue stood in front of the guests and invited them with a smile, Many of you havente to my princess manor yet. Today, youll enter the manor to take a look and add some liveliness to my new princess manor.
When everyone saw that MO Ruyue had said so herself, they all smiled and entered the princesss manor as if nothing had happened.
MO Ruyue was already upset. If they continued to be silent, it would make her even sadder.
Doctor Qin, Qin Rouwan, Hua Jianan, and Wang Tiezhu were helping MO Ruyue to greet the guests.
Xue Qing walked up to Qin Qingfei, Qin Qingshuang, and Qin Qingyan, who were frowning, and scolded them in a low voice.
What are you guys doing with such sad faces? Big Brother just went out, what are you guys doing with such faces? Dont you think Sister-inw is sad enough?
Xue Qing patted Qin Qingyans head.
Everyone, cheer up. Do you have so little confidence in Big Brother?
You guys havent seen it before, but let me tell you, Big Brother will definitely return with aplete victory, just likest time!
The three siblings were scolded by Xue Qing, and they also perked up.
Indeed, they had lost confidence in their eldest brother, but what about Sister-inw?
The three siblings cheered up and smiled, helping to greet the guests.
The dishes that were supposed to be prepared for the banquet had been prepared long ago. It would be a waste not to eat them. It was better to cook them all today and let the guests eat them.
While they were chatting andughing, they were also paying attention to MO Ruyues cautious expression.
Little did he know that MO Ruyue was just a little disappointed.
It would be a lie if Gu Ying went to war and said that she was not worried. But things had alreadye to this point. No matter how sad or worried she was, it was useless. She might as well live her life well and do what she could.
No matter what, life still had to go on.
Todays banquet was not only about the wedding, but also about the introduction of the viges greenhouse vegetables to these people.
Sure enough, the appearance of these garlic, chicken, feather, celery, and other vegetables suddenly made the scene, which was originally a little depressed because of Gu Yings departure, popr.
How can there be vegetables in the middle of winter?
This is celery. What is this?
The leek isnt this color, and the leek leaves arent that wide.
But its really delicious. It smells so good! Where did you buy these vegetables?
Hahaha, this is grown by our vige!
Wang Tiezhu entered the arena at the right time.
Lets taste it first. What do you think of the taste? If you want these vegetablester, you cane with me to the vige to choose them yourself.
Hey, hey, hey, Brother-inw, didnt we agree that you would give it to me?
Hua Jianan stood up anxiously. Seeing that everyone was looking at him, he hurriedly said, My wife loves to eat these.
Jianan, dont worry. You said that there will definitely be one!
Hua Jianan was relieved after hearing Wang Tiezhus words. As long as he did not show the greenhouse he was working with to those people, it was fine.
No, Sister-inw, didnt you say that you wanted to serve those dishes at the inn in the vige?
Hua Jianan asked MO Ruyue softly.
I didnt think that there would be much. Even if we supply the inn, there would still be more.
While the guests were eating happily, in the imperial pce, Ji Hong red angrily at MO Yu, who was kneeling in front of him. What did you say? Say it again. Who let Gu Ying go?
General Song!
MO Yu lowered his head and did not dare to look at the Emperor. If he said another word, he would be able to hear his voice trembling..
Chapter 553 - 553: Don ‘t Take the Danger
Chapter 553: Don t Take the Danger
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Crash!
Ji Hong was so angry that he swept the things on the table onto the ground.
The eunuch beside him was so frightened that he fell to his knees.
If Gu Ying goes to the border, what about Ming Yue? Does he not care about Ming Yue anymore?
How dare General Song make such a decision!
General is doing this for you, the Emperors son-inw.
MO Yu only dared to say this in his heart for General Song.
The only thing to me was that the Liu family was too despicable. They had
to collude with the foreign bandits at this time. If it was a dayter, wouldnt Gu Ying have married Princess Ming Yue and caused him to suffer an undeserved disaster here.
This subordinate is willing to help General Xue!
MO Yu had no choice but toe up with this move, hoping to appease the emperor.
Men!
Two more men in ck appeared in the room. They were also Dragon Shadow Guards.
My Lord!
I order the three of you to go to the border to assist Gu Ying. You must secretly ensure that his life is not in danger.
He was not concerned about Gu Ying. He was afraid that his sister would be a widow again and he would have to take the me. He would not take the me!
Yes, sir!
MO Yu and the other two said in unison.
MO Yu was touched. The Emperor always said how much he hated Gu Ying, but in the end, he couldnt bear to see anything happen to him. Even the three of them were sent to protect him. Their Emperor was really the best brother-inw in the world.
Nine monthster
Another year of spring and autumn
Chun Hua took the ount book from Wang Tiezhu and returned to the second courtyard of the princess manor.
At this moment, MO Ruyue, Granny Rong, Granny Yan, and Aunt Zhou were sitting under a grape rack, studying something.
Princess, Vige Chief Wang said that the county magistrate had sorted out this. Please have a look at the cotton harvest of Lianshan County this year.
MO Ruyue took the ount book from Chun Huas hands and flipped through it.
The geographical distribution of the entire county was different, so the cotton production ie varied. The lowest was about 300 catties, and the highest was about 500 catties. It was considered a high yield.
Seventy percent of these people were taken in by her, and the remaining thirty percent were freely sold or kept by the farmers.
Have the furthest ones in the entire county be delivered by tomorrow night. Have the people in the cotton clothing workshop be on their toes from tomorrow onwards.
They could recruit more workers from outside and divide them into two batches to work day and night. They had to finish it within half a month.
Yes.
Chun Hua followed MO Ruyues instructions and ran out again.
Princess, please try it on.
In Granny Rongs hands was a dark green, soft) and thin modified version of the cheongsam. There was also a pair of cotton pants and a single-material dress.
They had spent two days researching this.
Its really beautiful.
MO Ruyue took it and went into the room to change. When she came out, everyone was stunned!
This is really too beautiful!
It fits so well!
So this is what simple luxury looks like!
The medium-long cotton coat reached up to the knees and the thighs were split open. This style of clothing would not be a hindrance even if he was riding a horse. The lower body was matched with the same style of cotton pants, and the outer cover was a dress of the same color. It was a perfect match!
Princess, youre so beautiful!
MO Ruyue also felt that her outfit was very beautiful. She had designed it herself with the wisdom of her ancestors. How could it not look good? Wow, Sister-inw, what are you wearing? Its so beautiful!
Xue Qing came over with a chubby baby who was six or seven months old.
Then, Qin Qingfei came with a baby that was still one or two months old.
Xue Qing was carrying her son while Qin Qingfei was carrying her daughter.
Aiya, Sister-inw looks so good in this dress. Its a cotton-padded jacket, right?
MO Ruyue twirled in front of them.
Isnt it nice?
Its winter, so you should wear warm clothes.
Alright, Ill go change first. Its really hot.
MO Ruyue came out after changing into thin clothes. Granny Rong folded the clothes neatly.
Sister-inw, are you really nning to go to the border?
What if you go to the border ande back?
Today, Xue Qing and Qin Qingfei came together mainly because MO Ruyue was going to the border.
They wanted to persuade MO Ruyue not to take the risk. After all, she was a woman and it was inconvenient for her to travel.
Isnt that even better? It means that Im a lucky star.
Alright, Ive made up my mind. You dont have to say anything else. Im definitely going.
Ive been preparing those things for nine months. I didnt want to use them, but it seems that they really can be used.
Xue Qing and Qin Qingfei could not persuade her anymore.
In these nine months, she had been in close contact with Gu Ying through letters.
MO Ruyue didnt remember Gu Yings usual sweet nothings very clearly. She only knew that the border was cold and bitter. Half of the year was winter.
This was also the reason why MO Ruyue ordered the entire Lianshan County to grow cotton this year.
There were even many people who nted cotton in their grain fields.
Of course, even if all thend in Lianshan County was nted with cotton, it might not be enough for the soldiers at the border. It was still possible to temporarily respond to an emergency. In addition to the duck down collected in the past year, it was enough to make cotton down jackets for the soldiers at the border.
Even if these soldiers could not be used this time, they could still be used in the future. There were many soldiers at the border. They could not protect the country and had to suffer from hunger and cold.
Who knew that this battle would take so long? ording to the current situation, it would take at least one or two months to end.
Two months ago, she had asked someone to start making the outer cover of the cotton down jacket. Now that the cotton was down, she could just fill it with cotton and duck down ording to the ratio.
Granny Rong and the others couldnt control MO Ruyue. All they could do was help her prepare more things that she could use.
With so many of them, only Chun Hua, who had some fighting skills, would be able to go with them. The others would have to stay at home.
MO Ruyue was as busy as a spinning top in September.
She was busy helping the vigers open their shops, her own shop, the women who studied medicine, the viges inn, and the herbal medicine shop.
What MO Ruyue did not expect was that the medicinal cuisine shop, which she did not have much hope for, had suddenly be popr. Most of the customers were outsiders.
He would visit Gu Yings Civil and Martial Arts School from time to time because the two girls at home, especially Tang Tang, would always go to the Civil and Martial Arts School to eavesdrop on his lessons. No matter what he said, he could not stop them.
ording to Tang Tangs thoughts, why should her uncle, brother, and the other students be allowed to study while she and her aunt could only wait at home to grow up and take care of their husbands and children when they got married?
MO Ruyue agreed with what he said. So, she teamed up with Xue Qing, Qin Qingfei, and Qin Rouwan to build a school for girls in the vige.
This made Tang Tang and Qin Qingshuang very happy.
She had thought that in the first two years of school, there would definitely not be many people willing to send their girls to school. However, she did not expect that as long as there were girls in West River Vige, they would all send them. Gradually, many girls from other viges also sent them.
Fortunately, MO Ruyue did not have to do these things personally. She only needed to go and inspect asionally. Now, the reputation of the Womens College waspletely handed over to Granny Rong and Granny Yan.
Even Doctor Luo Quan from the hospital could assist the two nannies in supervising them.
Qin Qingfei was in charge of the inn and the herbal medicine shop in the vige. If things didnt go well, Xue Qing would help.
Gu Yings Civil and Martial Arts Institute would not have any major problems tor the time being, but he did not have the intention ot sending people out. Anyway, Gu Ying was on the battlefield, so it was not considered a breach of contract with the Emperor. As for the rest, he would wait for him toe back and reorganize himself..
Chapter 554 - 554: Not Wasting Any Time
Chapter 554: Not Wasting Any Time
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Half a monthter, 100,000 cotton-padded down jackets werepleted. During this period, MO Ruyue personally inspected 10,000 of them before she was relieved.
The cotton-padded clothing workshop continued to produce. She wanted to sell it to the Emperor at a high price. For his country, she and Gu Ying had not been married until now. It was impossible for her not to be angry.
Not only did she want to sell her cotton-padded clothes, but she also wanted to sold well all kinds of grain.
On the first day of the tenth month, MO Ruyue was ready to go. Tang Tang, Si Bao, Qin Qingshuang, Qin Qingyan, and Qin Qingfei were all reluctant to part with MO Ruyue.
Xue Qing and Qin Rouwans eyes also turned red.
Doctor Qin handed MO Ruyue tworge packages.
Alright, dont waste any more time. Be careful on the road.
MO Ruyue looked at the two thousand soldiers that the Emperor had sent to escort her. Even robbers would note out to cause trouble when the country was in trouble.
MO Ruyue looked at the crying children. I hope that when Ie back, all of you will improve and be able to take charge of your own affairs.
After saying that, he turned around and left. The two thousand soldiers immediately followed him and raised a cloud of dust, making the originally sad people forget how sad they were.
After Mo Ruyue left Xike City, she no longer had to worry about anything in the vige. Everything had been arranged. Her family would probably do better than her. What she was anxious about now was to find a way to reach the border faster.
Those soldiers were suffering from hunger and cold. If she arrived earlier, she could warm them up earlier.
Two dayster, Chun Hua really couldnt stand it anymore. Even she herself couldnt take it anymore.
Princess, its better for you to take the carriage. Your body wont be able to take it if you ride day and night like this.
Its fine. Didnt Granny Rong make us thicker cotton mats? Well change into them at the next station.
If you really cant take it anymore, you can follow me slowly in your own carriage. Ill leave some soldiers behind.
Princess, this servant can do it. This servant will definitely not leave Princess.
The station chief had already received the notice and had prepared all the rooms and normal supplies.
However, what he did not expect was that there were actually two women among these soldiers.
Although the two women were dressed as men, they did not deliberately dress up as men. Anyone with a discerning eye could tell that they were women at a nce.
Dont look at what you shouldnt look at, dont ask what you shouldnt ask! Otherwise, if he made a mistake, he would not be able to keep his life.
Wei Yi stood in front of the station chief and said those words, scaring the station chief so much that he hurriedly retreated, not daring to look at MO
Ruyue and Chun Hua again.
Is everything ready?
Yes, sir. Everything is ready.
Lead the way to the small courtyard first.
The postmaster led the way at Wei Yismand.
He finally knew that the original courtyard was prepared for these two girls.
Which familys young miss was this? Even if she was a young miss, she couldnt bring 2,000 guards to protect her at once.
However, no matter how curious he was, he did not dare to ask again. Wei Yis terrifying aura was not to be trifled with. If he spoke too much, he might really lose his head.
Those who coulde to the ry station to rest were either rich or noble. They were not people that small figures like them could afford to offend.
After entering the small courtyard, Wei Yi personally helped Chun Hua bring the hot water to the washroom. After pouring the water, he retreated and stood guard at the door.
Chun Hua wanted to help MO Ruyue take off her outer clothes, but MO Ruyue refused.
I should be much stronger than you. You just have to take care of yourself. Its so good for you to stay at home. You dont know how to enjoy life.
She had been working hard for the past two years. Although she hadnt learned internal energy, her hands and feet hadnt fallen behind. Even after two years of intermittent training, she was no longerparable to her fragile body.
Seeing that MO Ruyue was unwilling, Chun Hua could only take off her own clothes.
This servant is Princess person, naturally this servant will go wherever
Princess goes.
Her condition was indeed much worse than MO Ruyues.
In order to save time, the two of them took a bath together. Of course, they were separated into two baths.
Her thighs were almost peeled off by the horse riding, but in order to take afortable hot bath, she endured the pain and went into the hot water. Ignoring the pain in her legs, she felt reallyfortable being wrapped in warm water. She felt that most of his fatigue had been relieved.
MO Ruyue got up after she was almost done bathing and called out to Chun
Hua, who was about to fall asleep.
Get up and stop soaking. The water is getting cold.
Chun Hua was startled awake by MO Ruyues call, but she immediately stood up and quickly dried her body. Just as she was about to put on her clothes, MO
Ruyue stopped her and threw her a small porcin bottle.
Wipe the wound on your leg. There are still a few days to go.
After saying that, she opened a bottle for herself. She also had to apply medicine on her legs.
Chun Hua brought Mo Ruyue the modified qipao and cotton down jacket that Granny Rong had made for her.
Princess, its getting colder and colder. Lets wear this.
The further north they went, the colder the weather became. Moreover, they would have to ride horses in the future, so they could wear these thick clothes. If it was colder, they could just put on a cloak and a mink hat.
MO Ruyue did not refuse. However, she regretted agreeing to let Aunt Zhou and the others dress her as a woman. If it was also a mans dress, it would be simple and convenient to wear. It was such a mistake.
Wearing a womans dress would require a skirt to cover the pants, which was somewhat inconvenient. It would be inappropriate if she did not wear it. At this moment, she really regretted not making a mens cotton coat.
Chun Hua also had a simr design. Of course, the material of her clothes was not as good as MO Ruyues. However, the cotton and down inside were the same. She had made them herself.
They didnt have much hope at first, but when they saw how beautiful the princess looked in it, they were looking forward to it. The two of them changed into new clothes and opened the door.
Wei Yi, who was standing at the door, heard that the person inside was about toe out. At this moment, Wei Er, who had just finished preparing MO Ruyues dinner, came over.
Wei Yi called for Wei Er to follow him and empty the two bath barrels in the room.
Out of the four guards, only Wei One and Wei Two followed, while Wei Three and Wei Four stayed at home.
When they were still at home, Granny Rong and Jiayao had prepared a lot of condiments for them. They were all packed in small jars of different colors, with the names of the condiments pasted on them.
Granny Rong and the others knew that MO Ruyue would not be used to the food outside, but they could not bring all the food they had prepared along the way. Even in winter, it could go bad, so they had prepared many seasonings for her.
When the time came, they would make something convenient for themselves, such as simple barbecued meat, stewed meat, and so on. Wei Yi and Wei Er could make it with these seasonings, and the taste would be quite good.
Thus, when MO Ruyue and Chun Hua were washing up in the room, Wei Er went to prepare food. Now that he was out, it was time to eat.
Wei Yi and Wei Er saw that MO Ruyue was willing to endure physical pain rather than take the carriage. She wanted to reach the border as soon as possible.
Thus, Wei Yi and Wei Er had a tacit understanding along the way, trying not to waste any time.
What smells so good? The two of you have already prepared the food.
The moment she came out, Chun Hua wanted to hurry up and make some delicious food for the princess. When she smelled the smell, she knew that Wei Yi and Wei Er had prepared the food. Of course, she had to praise them.
Wei Ers face turned red from the praise.
Come over and well eat together. Have you arranged for the others?
Wei Yi immediately replied, Princess, dont worry. The others have already been arranged. Those things have also been arranged.
MO Ruyue nodded. Then lets eat together. We dont have to be so particr outside. Were in a hurry..
Chapter 555 - 555: Is This urhat Humans Do?
Chapter 555 - 555: Is This urhat Humans Do?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Since MO Ruyue had already said so, Wei Yi, Wei Er, and Chun Hua did not say anything else. However, the aroma of the roasted meat and sauce they ate drifted far away.
The people passing by outside the courtyard all wanted to see what was so fragrant in the courtyard.
However, the courtyard door was closed, so she couldnt see anything.
Chun Hua, who had finished eating, quickly stewed some meat that they had bought here, added the seasonings they had brought, and made a few pieces of sauce. They could eat for two days on the road, and it was not far from the next station in two days.
They rested at the ry station for a night and left at dawn the next day. Just like that, they basically didnt stop on the road and arrived at their destination two days earlier than expected.
Chun Hua saw that there were actually people living in such a cold ce. Moreover, wasnt there a war here? Why werent these people leaving?
However, looking at the cold and snowy weather, she knew that these people probably had nowhere to go. Moreover, it was easy to get out of here, but it was hard to say if they coulde back.
Perhaps they would die on the way, starve to death, or be eaten by wolves, tigers, and leopards. Thinking of this, it was indeed better to live here as long as possible
This vige should be the most remote vige on the border, and also thest vige
When MO Ruyue led two thousand soldiers past them, the hopeful looks on their faces dimmed.
At this moment, in the generals tent, Gu Ying and the general were plotting their next move. Suddenly, a soldier came to the door and stood outside the tent to report.
Reporting to Great General, 800 meters away from the camp, a 2,000-strong Xiliang army has arrived!
The general had a face full of question marks. He didnt ask for reinforcements?
Even if they did, they couldnt just support 2,000 people, right?
What could two thousand do?
At the end of the battle, two thousand people might be able to decide the oue, but at this time, two thousand people could not be used as a bargaining chip.
Send someone to ask whats going on.
Let me go.
Gu Ying stood up and felt that this matter should not be underestimated. If the enemy pretended to sneak into their camp, it would not be good.
The Great General did not hesitate and nodded to let Gu Ying personally take a look. He was the most at ease.
Bring a few more people over.
MO Ruyue had been waiting here with two thousand soldiers. She was exhausted after half a months journey.
She had thought that after she arrived, she would find a soldier to inform them that she was here to look for Gu Ying. However, before they could say anything, the soldiers guarding the camp raised a row of arrows at them.
Princess, how could they do this?
We already said that were here to look for the Prince Consort. Why dont they believe us?
Could it be that there was someone in the military camp who specifically went against the Prince Consort?
Chun Hua really couldnt understand. They had already introduced themselves, but the soldiers still had looks of disdain on their faces, as if what she said was a lie. However, what she said was clearly true!
What do you know? This way, we can better guard against external enemies.
If they let in a random person who said that he was looking for someone or his fianc, what if it was an enemy spy?
Chun Huas eyes widened when she heard the princess words. Thats true, why was she so stupid?
Then what should we do? Are we just going to wait here?
If they were to shoot, what would they do?
Chun Hua looked at those archers and felt that if they rxed in the next moment, or if their hands got a little sore and let go of the arrows in their hands?
Chun Hua was afraid just thinking about it. She took a few steps toward MO Ruyue, blocking the line of sight of those who were raising their arrows.
Dont worry. Although we only have two thousand people here, its not a small group.
As long as someone came, they would at least be at the level of a small manager. They would at least be able to understand what they were saying.
They waited in the snow for a while. At first, they were still in the mood to enjoy the snow scenery here, but after a while, they were shivering from the cold. If they didnt take a break, they would probably freeze to death here.
The cloak and hat were not that useful. The main thing was not that their body was really that cold, but that their minds needed rest.
MO Ruyue felt like a long time had passed, but in reality, it had only been fifteen minutes. Finally, a few people came out of the camp.
The leader had a full beard and wore a wolf-skin hat. The brim of the hat was very low, and one could vaguely see his two eyes. Below the nose was a full beard.
MO Ruyue felt a sense of familiarity from this person.
She felt that she might have missed Gu Ying too much. Those people all looked like him, but when she took a closer look, none of them were him.
When the bearded general saw the 2,000-man army, his heart skipped a beat. It couldnt be what he thought, right?!
He had just received MO Ruyues reply yesterday, but she did not say anything.
The closer he got to the person sitting on the horse, the more he saw that she resembled the person he had been thinking about day and night.
MO Ruyue was tightly wrapped in a cloak and also wore a mink fur hat. Simrly, only her eyes were exposed. When she got closer, those eyes looked really familiar.
Who are you? Whats the matter?
Princess, its the Prince Consorts voice!
Chun Hua recognized Gu Yings voice and immediately jumped off the horse happily, not caring about the pain on her inner leg.
She looked at the crowd again and again, but she did not see anyone who was her familys Prince Consort!
MO Ruyue looked at the bearded little leader and recalled the first time she saw Gu Ying. Wasnt he her Prince Consort?
MO Ruyue lifted the hood covering her mouth, revealing her small face.
Before she could speak, Gu Ying walked forward quickly, and the soldiers behind him quickly followed.
Xue Jiang, you cant!
The closer Gu Ying got to MO Ruyue, the more he realized that she was the person he had been thinking about day and night!
He looked at Wei Yi and Wei Er who were standing beside MO Ruyue, as well as the maidservant beside her. Wasnt that Chun Hua? He couldnt care less about anything else and quickly ran forward.
At this moment, MO Ruyue also dismounted from her horse.
Yue, is that you?
I am MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue also ran toward Gu Ying. The two of them met in the middle of the
two groups and hugged each other tightly.
This scene caused both sides to stare in shock.
Hey, hey, hey, is this something humans do?
They were treating the thousands of people like air!
Gu Ying snapped out of his daze and released MO Ruyue, letting her look at him in the eye. His tone was stern.
Why are you here? Who asked you toe? What are you doing here?
Dont you know what this ce is? Is this a ce you cane to casually?
Hurry up and go back!
MO Ruyue stretched out her hand towards Chun Hua, and Chun Hua took out a token from her bag and ced it in MO Ruyues hand.
Look, I have a written order. Im here legally.
Gu Ying also saw that the token was indeed real.
Then you cant stay here either. Its simply too ridiculous. Be obedient and go back quickly.
Im not messing around. I miss you.
MO Ruyues casual words sessfully stopped Gu Ying from reprimanding him. His originally stern tone had changed.
Then Then I would stay here for two days before going back..
Chapter 556 - 556: Written Deed!
Chapter 556 - 556: Written Deed!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The thousands of soldiers on both sides spat at the same time!
When the Great General heard that Princess Ming Yue hade, he was very surprised. What was a woman like her doing here at this time?
Not only did hee, but she also came with the Emperors personal decree.
The general suddenly felt a little guilty.
To Princess Ming Yue and Gu Ying, he was the viin who had destroyed the wedding day of the couple.
Men!
A guard immediately entered the tent.
General, please give your orders!
Use your fastest speed to build a new tent for Princess Ming Yue beside
General Xues tent.
Yes, sir!
MO Ruyue, who had followed Gu Ying into the military camp, did not immediately listen to Gu Ying and go to his tent to rest.
I want to see your Great General.
Gu Ying looked at MO Ruyue, whose face was slightly chapped by the wind and frost. His heart ached for her. His wife, who was originally delicate and tender, had be like this. He just wanted her to quickly go to the tent to wash up and have a good rest.
He heard that she wanted to see the general, but he didnt ask her what she wanted. His wife wouldnt do something unreasonable.
Ill take you there now.
Gu Ying personally brought MO Ruyue to the Great Generals tent to ask for an audience.
When the Great General heard that Princess Ming Yue wanted to see him, his scalp tightened.
Could it be that this Princess Ming Yue was someone who bore grudges and specially came to settle scores with him?
No matter what, he did owe her an apology, so he came out to see her personally.
This one greets Princess Ming Yue.
Dont be polite!
General, Im here with a mission. Let me show you something.
He waved at Wei Yi, and Wei Yi went to get a cotton down jacket.
General, you will understand once you try it on.
General, you cant!
Advisor Jun immediately stood up to object.
Who knew if this Princess Ming Yue was a friend or foe, and what kind of mentality she had. It could also be because their general had asked Gu Ying, who was about to marry her, toe to the border, and she had always held a grudge to take revenge on their general.
He would never let the general fall into such a dangerous situation.
MO Ruyue looked at General Song with a half-smile, but General Song ignored her.
Seeing that MO Ruyue was calm, he also took the coat and took off his armor on the spot, putting on the cotton coat.
This thin cotton coat felt as if it was not wearing any clothes. After a while, it was warm, and not a trace of wind could seep in. This made the general extremely surprised. The expression on his face surprised everyone.
Was there anything different about that dress?
It made their general, who had always been expressionless, break down.
General!
The military counselor was most worried about what was wrong with the clothes. Seeing the general like this, it didnt seem like there was a problem, but the expression on the generals face indicated that there was a problem!
The military counselor was extremely worried. He wanted the general to take off his clothes quickly, but the general waved him away.
Gu Ying looked at the military counselor who was leaning towards him. He took two quick steps towards MO Ruyue, perfectly avoiding the military counselor who was leaning towards him.
He could see the tant rejection of his wife in Advisor Juns eyes.
His wife had juste here and had never offended him, so why should she give her a hard time?
Gu Ying felt that it was necessary to find a military counselor to practice.
Fortunately, the soldier beside him saw him and helped him up, preventing him from falling.
Advisor Jun looked at Gu Ying in disbelief. Gu Ying rolled his eyes at him, and Advisor Juns eyes widened.
Gu Ying, he Was he doing it on purpose? Princess Ming Yue, who made these clothes?
The Great General did not have the time to care about the military counselor who was almost knocked down by him. He asked MO Ruyue anxiously.
MO Ruyue did not beat around the bush with him. She stopped because she was cold, hungry, and sleepy. If it were not for the cotton-padded down jacket, she would have gone to Gu Yings tent a long time ago.
To tell you the truth, if I had 100,000 of these clothes, would you buy them for your soldiers?
Naturally, MO Ruyue could also see that the military counselor was deeply repelling her. She really wanted tough.
She and Gu Ying were clearly married, but Gu Ying was dragged here by them on the eve of their marriage. Although it was for the sake of the country, she was also considered to havee all the way here. No matter what) she should not be ostracized. She did not understand anything and was already imagining all kinds of dark sides about her.
Originally, she had nned to give the 100,000 cotton-padded clothes directly to the military camp, but after seeing the military counselors attitude, she decided not to give them away.
There was no reason for him to not get anything good after doing a good deed. Some people would even say that he was a weasel paying New Years greetings to a chicken.
Her money did note from the wind. She had worked hard to run her own business.
Is that true?
The Great General was in disbelief. If there were really 100,000 of them, then his soldiers would be saved. They might even be able to help them in this battle, and their chances of victory would increase greatly.
Think about it, if you were to fight with someone, and the other party was full of energy and warmth in the cold weather, while your side was cowering and trembling with hunger and cold, just in terms of aura, you would be suppressed by the other party. How could you win the battle?
Where? Quickly bring me to take a look.
The general saw MO Ruyues expression and knew that she not only had a hundred thousand such cotton-padded clothes, but she had also brought them with her.
Great General, you want to buy it?
MO Ruyue looked at the Great General with a faint smile.
If she didnt answer her business, wouldnt she say it herself?
Even if you change the topic to grandmas house, I have the ability to change it for you.
Hahaha, if Princess Ming Yue has brought all 100,000 pieces, then I will buy them with money!
General.
The military counselor hurriedly spoke up when he heard the generals words. He had just called out the word general when he was stopped by the generals hand.
But I want to inspect the goods. I have to see that all of those 100,000 pieces are the same as the one Im wearing.
Princess Ming Yue also knows that our army has been at war with the enemy for nine months.
However, Princess Ming Yue can rest assured that when the troops return to the court, MO Jiang will definitely report to the Emperor and give the money.
MO Ruyue heard that the Great General had just returned to the general, but now he wanted to give her credit, so he became a lowly general.
Old fox!
She also revealed the same smile.
Of course.
However, the general has to give me a written agreement. Otherwise, Im afraid that my imperial brother will renege on his debt.
General, you should also know that I am a woman who manages arge family and four children. It was not easy for me to save up some family property, but now it is all spent on these 100,000 cotton coats.
If Imperial Brother reneges on his debt to me, my child wont even be able to attend private school.
When I came, my children were crying so miserably. If it wasnt for the fact that I had no choice, I really couldnt bear to leave them alone.
The general almost couldnt maintain the smile on his face. What a cunning little girl.
However, this girl was really smart. Heughed out loud.
Hahaha, good, write a written pledge!
Prepare brush, ink, paper, and inkstone!
The general ordered loudly and then smiled at MO Ruyue.
Can you take me to see those 100,000 pieces of clothes now?
Since Ive already written a receipt and the princess hasnt told me how much this piece of clothing costs, I can write it clearly on the receipt..
Chapter 557 - 557: Extra Meal
Chapter 557: Extra Meal
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue felt that the Great Generals tone was still eptable. He directly addressed her as me. Even his smile and tone had be better.
Of course. General) pleasee this way. Lets talk as we walk.
Youve been wearing this cotton-padded jacket until now. Its light and warm.
I dont need to introduce it to you. You should know it better than me.
Half of the cotton-padded jacket was made of cotton that had just been produced this year, and the other half was duck down.
Those duck down feathers had been specially soaked in herbs to prevent insects and stink.
Even if it was wet with water, it would be easy to dry. The fluffiness would not be as rigid as pure cotton when it came into contact with water.
Since its for the soldiers to wear, I wont ept the ck heart money. Ill just collect my own cost and treat it as adding warmth to the soldiers on the battlefield.
The cost of a cotton coat is fifty copper coins.
Not only the general, but even the military counselor felt that the price was not expensive at all. It could even be said to be cheap.
Beloved, is 50 copper coins enough for such a good cotton-padded jacket?
Although Gu Ying was not very good at doing business, he was also a businessman and knew a little about this aspect.
Not to mention anything else, just the fabric of this cotton coat was worth ten to twenty copper coins. In addition to the cotton, duck down, andbor, was it really not a loss?
Ive already said it and I wont change it. Fifty coins for one. General, if you want it, write a written agreement.
MO Ruyue knew very well whether fifty wen was a loss or not.
In fact, it was not a loss. For example, the duck down came from the nursing home and did not cost her. Those veterans said that they also wanted to do their part for the country.
At this moment, not only the general, but even the military advisor was shocked when he saw the 100,000 cotton coats. This Princess Ming Yue really came to deliver them cotton coats!
The Great General was not a person who cared about his face. He personally checked more than ten pieces, and they were all exactly the same as what he was wearing. The military counselor also checked more than ten pieces, and the results were all the same.
The general wrote the IOU very readily. It was actually an IOU for 100,000 cotton-padded clothes.
MO Ruyue waved at the two thousand soldiers who had escorted her here, asking them to help put away the hundred thousand quilted down jackets ording to the generals instructions or to distribute them to the soldiers. She didnt care anymore.
MO Ruyue took the promissory note from the Great Generals hands and tucked it into her bosom like a treasure. Then, she looked at Gu Ying and whispered, Carry me back. Im dizzy.
MO Ruyue closed her eyes and fell toward Gu Ying, a relieved expression on her face.
In the military camp, she couldnt openly let Gu Ying carry her or hug her. Her legs were burning with pain. She had been gritting her teeth and holding on until now. Now, she didnt want to take another step, so she had to resort to this n.
She was so tired that she fainted, yet she couldnt hug him?
Before Gu Ying could react, he subconsciously reached out to catch MO Ruyue and carried her in his arms.
As soon as the beauty entered his arms, Gu Ying felt as if she was floating in the air. His face revealed a panicked and distressed expression.
Ruyue, whats wrong?
Mo Ruyue could tell from Gu Yings nervous voice that he must not have understood what she said just now. She opened her eyes quietly, blinked at him, and then closed them again.
Gu Ying finally understood that MO Ruyue was pretending to faint, but his heart still ached.
It took her half a month to travel all the way here. Even a man would not be able to take it, let alone a girl like her. Moreover, his wife was so delicate. He could not imagine how his wife had traveled all the way here.
Advisor Jun noticed the situation here and was very angry when he saw Gu Yings behavior. He was really a guy who forgot his friendship when he saw women!
Quickly call the military doctor over. Oh right, isnt there a female doctor? The general felt that MO Ruyues breathing was still stable. She might be tired, but he knew that the journey had been tough. He would only feel relieved if he let the doctor take a look at her.
Looking at how worried Gu Ying was about his wife, if there was really something wrong with Princess Ming Yue, Gu Ying would definitely be angry with him.
The soldier received the order and went to look for the doctor. Gu Ying carried MO Ruyue directly into his tent.
Chun Hua followed closely behind. She was also grimacing in pain. Luckily, Wei Yi was beside her, helping her reduce her strength.
Gu Ying gently ced MO Ruyue on his bed and realized that she was already asleep. It was obvious how tired she was.
He turned around and saw the pale Chun Hua. Come and rest with your princess.
Chun Hua still wanted to decline. This was the Eldest Masters bed.
We dont care about that here. When your tent is set up, it will be tomorrow at the earliest. Are you prepared to stand until tomorrow?
Chun Hua could not help but want to pounce on the bed the moment she saw it. Now that Grand Elder Wen had said so, she did not hold back and ran to the other end of MO Ruyues bed to lie down.
Soon, the military doctor arrived, and the female doctor followed him.
The doctor checked MO Ruyues pulse. She was just a little overworked. She would be fine after resting for two more days.
The female doctor looked at MO Ruyue who was lying on Gu Yings bed. Her eyes, which had been calm all this while, started to ripple. This person was Yuan Yuan, who had been exiled to the border.
You guys can leave.
Gu Ying noticed that Yuan Yuan was looking at MO Ruyue strangely, so he asked her to leave. He tucked MO Ruyue in and left.
He let the two guards guard the door and went to look for the general.
The general nodded in agreement when he heard Gu Ying say that he was going out to patrol the surroundings.
It just so happened that they had a truce with the enemy in the next two days. If MO Ruyue hade a day earlier or two dayster, they would have been fighting and they might not have been able to see them.
When it was almost dusk, a strange smell of stew wafted out of the military camp.
Advisor Jun had just returned from thetrine when he smelled the fragrance. Seeing that it was almost time for dinner, he could not help but follow the fragrance. Could it be that the kitchen was going to give their general an extra meal today?
Then, he wanted to see what was so fragrant.
She followed the smell and walked to Gu Yings tent. This was not the main point. The main point was that Gu Ying was making soup.
Advisor Jun immediately put on a fawning smile. Hehe, Brother, youre making soup.
Gu Ying had a pair of hands that could cook well.
The Great General had said that Gu Yings cooking skills were not inferior to the imperial chefs in the pce.
Coincidentally, Gu Ying was about to get the soup.
Yo, where did this roe deere from?
However, Gu Ying directly took two pieces of wood as a cushion and carried the entire jar into the tent.
Advisor Jun was still standing outside when he heard Gu Yings words.
Ruyue, have some soup to warm your stomach first. Ill make some noodles for youter.
MO Ruyue slept for the entire afternoon. When she woke up, she found herself lying on Gu Yings bed in such a dirty state. She felt very embarrassed.
When MO Ruyue woke up, she saw that Chun Hua had also woken up. Moreover, when both of them were lying on the same bed, MO Ruyue felt slightly less awkward. At least there was someone apanying her.
After Chun Hua woke up, she wanted to boil some hot water. The princess definitely had to wash up and apply some ointment. Otherwise, the inner part of her thigh might fester.
As soon as she stepped out of the tent, a soldier came forward to ask if she wanted hot water. Chun Hua nodded, and then a few soldiers carried tworge buckets of hot water. This was what Gu Ying had instructed them to do.
Ever since Chun Hua woke up, she had beenmenting about how thoughtful and considerate her husband was!
Chapter 558 - 558: The Heavily Injured Soldier
Chapter 558: The Heavily Injured Soldier
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After washing up and changing into clean clothes, her entire body felt extremelyfortable. Chun Hua had just helped MO Ruyue apply the ointment on her legs, and she had also applied the ointment on her own legs. She was now drying MO Ruyues hair with a cotton cloth when she heard Gu Yings voice from outside.
Gu Ying had ordered two guards to pour out the water they had just used to wash up. Therefore, Gu Ying knew that MO Ruyue and Chun Hua were already dressed. In order to avoid the military counselors evil ws, he was a little anxious and went straight in.
Gu Ying carried the jar into the tent, and a fragrance entered.
What did you make that smells so good?
Gu Ying had already taken out a bowl of meat soup. He naturally wouldnt make a move.
Chun Hua cooked a little too much. Your Princess probably cant finish it all by herself.
Thank you, Prince Consort!
Chun Hua was already starving, and she couldnt help but swallow her saliva when she smelled the fragrance. Now that she heard what the Prince Consort said, she quickly went forward to help herself.
Her Princess naturally did not need her to care. Didnt she see the Prince Consort carrying a bowl of soup? He probably wanted to feed her personally. Why would she need her?
She wouldnt bring this upon herself.
And after bing a bowl of meat soup, she cleverly chose not to be a third wheel.
This servant also wants to eat a meat pie. I think Wei Yi has some. Ill ask him for one.
Without waiting for a reply, she went out with a bowl of meat soup.
As soon as she came out of the tent, she saw the military advisor not far away from the tent.
Chun Hua didnt like this military advisor either. She didnt have a good expression on her face and didnt even spare him a nce.
This military advisor had targeted her Princess time and time again. Dont think that she was blind.
Just as she was about to pass by him, she saw the military advisor walking straight toward her.
Did General Xue ask you to give this to me?
At least that kid still had some conscience and did not forget about him.
Advisor Jun actually reached out his hand as he spoke, wanting to take the bowl of soup away from Chun Huas hands.
Chun Hua quickly turned around and stared at the military counselor with wide eyes in disbelief.
Why is your face so big?
This was stewed by my Prince Consort for my Princess to drink. You dare to think about it?
The military advisor thought that this maidservant was deliberately making things difficult for him, but he was not angry and did not argue with the little girl.
Isnt your Princess in the tent? You came out with a bowl. Who else can you give it to if not me?
Chun Hua had never seen such a shameless person. She picked up the bowl and took a sip.
This is a gift from the Prince Consort, you lunatic!
The military advisor was stunned.
Chun Hua walked past him to look for Wei Yi and the others.
Advisor Jun stood outside Gu Yings tent for a while. Seeing that there was no sign of anyoneing out, it seemed that he would not be able to drink the soup today. In the end, he left resentfully.
In the tent, Gu Ying was feeding MO Ruyue with meat soup after Chun Hua left.
Its okay. Leave it there. Ill eat it myselfter. You can go and do your work.
Although MO Ruyue felt that Gu Ying was feeding her personally, she felt that he was a busy man, and it was not like she could not move her hands now.
There was no need for that.
Im free today.
Hurry up and dry your hair. Its a cold day, so you have to dry your hair quickly. You cant catch a cold.
MO Ruyue could not refute him, nor did she want to. However, Gu Ying still put down the bowl and took the cotton cloth from her.
Let me do it.
Gu Ying very carefully reced the moisture in MO Ruyues dried hair. As he had great strength and possessed inner energy, his technique was very ingenious. In just a few moves, he had evaporated the moisture in MO Ruyues hair to about 80-90% dry.
Gu Ying looked at his masterpiece and was very satisfied. He picked up the bowl of meat soup on the table and continued to feed MO Ruyue spoonful by spoonful.
You can stay here in my tent. I might not have time to apany you tomorrow. If you are bored, you can walk around, but you cant go to the front line.
But I think you should rest in the tent for two days. Is the injury on your leg serious?
In fact, Gu Ying really wanted to see how MO Ruyues leg injury was. However, he felt that they had not reached the final step yet, so they should not be so reckless.
MO Ruyue was also aware of Gu Yings reason for not having time apany her tomorrow. She reckoned that the war would start again tomorrow.
Dont worry, I can take care of myself.
By the way, if Im staying in your tent, where are you staying tonight?
MO Ruyue had heard Gu Yings words earlier. He meant that he would not be resting here tonight.
She knew very well how much of a gentleman Gu Ying was. He was a straight man.
You dont have to worry about me. There are so many tents here. How can anyone not be willing to squeeze with me?
As the two of them chatted, MO Ruyue finally finished the bowl of meat soup and was full. Gu Ying scooped a lot of meat into the bowl.
MO Ruyue immediately pulled over a bundle that she had brought with her. She opened it and saw that it was filled with Gu Yings new clothes.
These were all made by Aunt Zhou. Try them on and see if they fit. If theres anything that doesnt fit, let me know. Ill get Chunhua to alter them for you.
Alright.
Gu Ying happily took it, but before he could say anything, a loud horn sounded from outside.
Gu Ying stood up with a solemn expression.
Stay in the tent and dont go out. Ill go take a look.
In fact, Gu Ying did not even need to be there to know that this was a sudden ambush by the enemy.
Alright, Im not going anywhere. Ill wait for you in the tent.
MO Ruyue hurriedly answered him, trying to put his mind at ease.
Gu Ying did not return for the entire night, and MO Ruyue did not sleep much until the fifth watch of the next day.
Quick, call the military doctor over!
A group of soldiers carried the wounded soldiers fromst night and shouted as soon as they entered the camp.
The military doctors arrived one after another, and there was a woman among them.
MO Ruyue heard the shouts outside and quickly put on her clothes. Chun Hua immediately followed.
soon, Nio Ruyue Joined the army of military doctors to treat the wounded.
Initially, the military doctors saw that a woman had suddenly appeared, but when they thought of who this woman was, they swallowed their words of stopping her from causing trouble.
MO Ruyue looked at the heavily injured soldiers. At first, she didnt feel any waves of emotions. She had seen many people with injuries like this, and she had even seen people with injuries worse than this.
However, when she saw the heavily injured soldiers being carried in from the outside, her heart slowly began to change.
Seeing that the military doctors were running out of manpower, MO Ruyue personally rolled up her sleeves and said, Chun Hua, go and get my first aid kit.
Yes, Princess, this servant will go now.
When Chun Hua left, she nced at Wei Yi and Wei Er, indicating for them to follow the Princess closely and not make any mistakes.
After all that had happened, Wei Yi and Wei Er were well aware of their main responsibilities. They couldnt care about anything else and only focused on their master.
Even if MO Ruyue asked them to lend a hand, they would definitely leave someone to follow MO Ruyue closely.
In their understanding, no matter where it was, even if their Prince Consort was here now, not to mention that their Prince Consort was not here yet.
Chun Hua carried MO Ruyues first aid kit over as quickly as she could. It was quite heavy. If not for her martial arts skills, it would have taken a while for an ordinary servant girl to carry it herself.
I want to disinfect it.
Seeing that Chun Hua had arrived, she only said a few words. Chun Hua skillfully opened the first aid kit and took out a disinfectant to pass to MO Ruyue..
Chapter 559 - 559: Does She Really Know Medicine?
Chapter 559: Does She Really Know Medicine?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue disinfected her hands. Wei Yi, take the medicine box and follow me.
MO Ruyue also noticed that Wei Yi was unwilling to leave her no matter what, so he helped her carry the medicine box. This box was quite heavy, and if Chun Hua had to carry it all by herself, she would probably not be able to hold on for long.
MO Ruyue resisted the urge to scold the military doctors. They had been here for so long and had gotten used to it for so many years. Besides, the medical conditions here were not that good. They had already done their best by using the crudest method to stop their injuries in time.
All they had to do was not talk nonsense and do their best to help.
Who had the conditions? Who didnt want to use the best method to treat these injured people?
Your leg has to be amputated.
An old man with a white beard said to a soldier whose leg had been bent.
The young soldier immediately wailed miserably.
MO Ruyue went to take a look. It was a young man who was only eighteen or neen years old. In her previous life, he was just a child. MO Ruyue could not bear to see him crying so miserably.
Let me take a look.
If it werent for the fact that there were too many injured patients and too few beds, and the old man was blocking the way, MO Ruyue would have just attacked without saying a word.
Princess, theres nothing to see here.
The old mans tone was very calm. It was obvious that he was a little impatient.
If it wasnt for the fact that the person who was talking to him was the princess, the old man would have kicked her out long ago.
When did this happen? When did the Princesse here to fool around?
Even though she was given the title of a miracle doctor, she had only cured the gue. The little girl really thought that she could cure everything just because she had the title of a divine doctor. She did not want to dy him from treating the patient.
MO Ruyue didnt have the time to argue with him. She pulled him back and pushed the old man away.
The old man was so angry that he blew his beard and stared at MO Ruyue in disbelief.
You, you, you, this is a matter of life and death.
Shut up. I can treat his leg. Theres no need to amputate it.
MO Ruyue couldnt be bothered to argue with him, so she shut his mouth with a solid statement.
The old man flung his sleeves angrily when he heard MO Ruyues boastful words.
Alright, she would let him see how she would treat him. Anyway, she had already said that she would take responsibility. If anything really happened, he would not be able to find her.
Of course, the old man did not just stand there and look at MO Ruyue. He went on to treat the next patient.
MO Ruyue took out everything that she needed for the surgery. It would be best if there were two assistants to help MO Ruyue at this time. However, judging from the attitude and expressions of the military doctors, it was definitely impossible to ask them to help her. It was better to let them treat other patients.
Wei Yi, the two of you will help me.
Yes.
Yes.
Chun Hua and Wei Yi said in unison.
Handsome, I might be able to reattach your leg, but I need your cooperation. Are you willing?
The soldier who had been wailing stopped crying when he saw the military doctor being dragged away by MO Ruyue. Although he was afraid that his leg would be amputated and did not want to be amputated, he still wanted to live even if no one cared about him.
Hearing this question from the fairy, he was a little confused.
Thus, MO Ruyue said it again.
Really? Can you really reattach my leg?
But the doctors all said no.
The young soldier finally understood what the fairy maiden was saying. He could not believe it. The old doctor was so old, so his medical skills must not be bad. After all, he had umted so many years of experience. He had already said that it was impossible. This fairy maiden who looked like a girl, did she really know medical skills?
Could she really cure him? Or was she just teasing him?
Dont you want to try?
If it really doesnt work, Ill definitely be able to save your life. But what if it works? You can save your leg.
You have to make a decision as soon as possible. The sooner you connect it, the better.
Alright, Ill try!
The little soldier was unafraid of death. He was not even afraid of death, so what was there to be afraid of? Alright, Ill go. Wei Yi, disinfect your hands.
Its done, Princess.
He didnt expect Chun Hua and the others to be so understanding.
Wei Yi cant be disturbed by others.
Princess, dont worry. This subordinate will guard my body.
There were several injured patients and two other military doctors in the tent. It was impossible to separate a room for her to perform the surgery. The conditions did not allow it, and it was toote. MO Ruyue could only perform the surgery on the spot.
Fortunately, it was just a leg reattachment, so it was not that troublesome.
MO Ruyue first applied anesthetic on the soldiers leg. After a while, he could no longer feel anything.
The little soldier suddenly felt veryfortable. At least he didnt feel the heart-wrenching pain anymore.
The fairy maiden directly cut his leg with a knife again. She used a pair of pliers to pinch his flesh and pulled it around as if she was looking for something. He felt a chill run down his spine when he saw it. Was this really his leg?
How old are you this year? Where are you from?
Mo Ruyue saw that the child was looking at her in horror as she helped him with the operation, so she tried to talk to him to distract him.
My family is from the west. Im eighteen this year.
As expected, the young soldier was distracted by MO Ruyues question.
Thats quite far. Is there anyone else at home?
After a while, the two of them chatted happily. The little soldier no longer watched MO Ruyue cut his leg.
Sister Fairy, you called me handsome before. What did you mean? MO Ruyue was quite satisfied with the way she addressed him.
As the name suggests, its to praise your handsomeness.
Actually, the young soldiers face was dark. Because of the previous battle, his face was covered in dust and there was even a lot of blood. It was impossible to tell what he looked like. Not only was he not handsome, but he also looked a little scary.
The little soldier knew that MO Ruyue was coaxing him, but he was still very happy. The fairy maiden was praising him for his handsomeness.
This was the first time in his life that someone had praised him for being handsome.
I-I-Im actually not good-looking.
The little soldier felt that he had to be reserved. No, youre handsome, youre very handsome!
You are all very handsome!
You are very handsome when you go to the battlefield for your loved ones. You are also very handsome when you fight the enemy. You are the most handsome people in the world!
The other people in the tent also noticed MO Ruyues movements. They saw MO Ruyue cutting the kids leg, but they did not expect that the kid who had been wailing would stop crying. Even with the anesthetic, he should be scared to see his leg cut like this. They were all scared.
That kid was the one with the most serious injuries in this tent.
As they watched, they realized that MO Ruyue and that kid were actually chatting. Their questions and answers sounded very heartwarming.
However, when they heard the two of them discussing the issue of handsomeness and MO Ruyue mentioning that they were the most handsome people in the world, the eyes of the injured people in the tent couldnt help but turn red.
Alright, Ill have to trouble you to take care of this soldier tonight. If theres anything wrong, hurry up and call me.
Previously, the old man had watched MO Ruyue fix the soldiers leg.
To be honest, he admired MO Ruyue a little.
Perhaps this Princess Ming Yue was really a divine doctor. At this moment, he did not dare to speak indifferently. Just the skill of reattaching a leg was worthy of his admiration.
I know where the Princess lives. Dont worry, Princess. Ill personally keep watch tonight..
Chapter 560 - 560: I Won ‘t Teach You Medicine
Chapter 560: I Won ??t Teach You Medicine
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue saw that the old man??s attitude had changed significantly. She didn??t have time to waste on him, so she nodded.
Only then did the little soldier realize that his leg had been fixed by the fairy sister unknowingly.
??Sister Fairy, have my legs recovered? Are there no more questions???
The little soldier was a little excited. His leg could be considered straight now. Although he could not move, he was already very satisfiedpared to the way he bent before.
??We still have to observe. We??ll make a conclusion after three days.??
??But don??t worry, as long as you do what I told you before, there shouldn??t be a problem.??
The surgery was quite sessful.
??Thank you, Sister Fairy. Are you leaving?
The little soldier was very excited. He really wanted to go down and send the fairy sister off personally, but he couldn??t move now.
??This is what I should do. I??m going to take a look at the other patients now.??
MO Ruyue carefully washed her hands in the basin of water that Wei Yi had brought over.
??Alright, Sister Fairy. Take care.??
MO Ruyue led Wei Yi and Chun Hua to the next tent.
??Elder Qi, what did you call her just now?
??You didn??t hear wrongly, she is the Princess Ming Yue that the Emperor personally conferred.??
??You were lucky to meet her today. Perhaps you can really keep your leg.
Remember, if there??s anything wrong, tell me immediately.??
After the old man finished speaking, the few people in the tent who were still conscious revealed looks of disbelief.
That was a princess, a real princess!
The princess would actually treat these little soldiers personally!
However, the Princess really cured them. Although she didn??t give it to every one of them, the Princess personally reattached that kid??s leg. They really saw it.
The military doctor who was called Qi Lao was also reflecting on himself. He could not judge a book by its cover. Moreover, this princess was different from what he had heard.
He felt that he still had to learn more about this medical skill. He was still far from being able topare to a little girl.
MO Ruyue did not know what the people in the tent were talking about after she left. She was currently focused on suturing another person??s waist wound.
One of the man??s kidneys had been removed because it had been pierced by a long spear. He could not keep that kidney. Fortunately, the other one was still fine. It should not be a problem for his future fertility.
There was a medic in this tent who was proficient in suturing, but he never thought that a damaged organ could be removed in this way. He was suddenly enlightened.
Indeed, if an arm or leg was dead, it could be amputated. Why couldn??t the internal organs be removed?
MO Ruyue woke up early in the morning. She didn??t even have time to wash up before she came over to treat the injured soldiers. She only ate two meals a day, and they were all random meals. She mainly ate to fill her stomach. No
one knew what she ate.
Even when she slept at night, she would often get up to check on the sudden condition of the injured. This situationsted for three days before it calmed down.
Gu Ying and the others had stopped fighting again. It was said that the enemy had suffered heavy losses this time, while their side had suffered rtively light losses. This was the result of a sudden sneak attack.
However, Gu Ying did not have time to visit her in the past two days because he had been in the general??s tent, plotting the next battle strategy with the military counselor and the others.
In three days, MO Ruyue had lost a lot of weight. Chun Hua couldn??t help but feel sorry for her.
The few patients that MO Ruyue had sutured were all recovering well and had passed the critical period. MO Ruyue finally had the time to take a bath.
MO Ruyue only realized that the wound on her inner thigh had be inmed when she was pouring the hot water into the tub.
In the past three days, she had forgotten about the injury on her leg because she had been treating those patients. Then, she had been standing and walking around, which was why she had be like this.
In this situation, she couldn??t soak for too long. She quickly washed up and came up. She gritted her teeth and treated her injuries. Then, she heard Chun Hua telling someone outside the tent that it was not convenient for her at the moment.
It seemed like someone wanted to see her.
MO Ruyue quickly put on her clothes. There was no sound from outside, so she figured that the person must have left. She asked Chun Hua toe in and help her dry her hair. She also asked who it was just now. Unexpectedly, another voice came from outside the tent.
??Yuan Yuan requests an audience with Princess Ming Yue!??
??The person outside said that her name is Yuan Yuan???
Chun Hua nodded.
??I already said that it would be inconvenient for you, but she just stood outside and refused to leave.??
MO Ruyue nned to meet Yuan Yuan and see what she wanted to do.
After she came to the camp, she realized that Yuan Yuan was rtively honest. sne basically only cared about the injured and did not pay attention to ner. sne did not expect Yuan Yuan toe to her own door.
??Let her in.??
Chun Hua went out to call for help.
To MO Ruyue??s surprise, Yuan Yuan immediately knelt down in front of MO Ruyue the moment she entered the tent!
MO Ruyue was even more puzzled. Even if this person wanted to greet her, she didn??t need to do so. She was like apletely different person from before.
Something fishy?
MO Ruyue looked at Yuan Yuan without saying anything. Yuan Yuan did not expect MO Ruyue to say anything to her after she knelt down. She was here to beg for help, so she had to make her stance clear.
Yuan Yuan immediately kowtowed to MO Ruyue.
Her actions made MO Ruyue feel that her motive was not pure, but she still did not say anything.
??Princess Ming Yue, please teach me the art of suturing!??
??I want to save more people!??
Yuan Yuan kowtowed to MO Ruyue again after she finished speaking. She did not even raise her head after her head touched the ground. It was obvious that she was waiting for MO Ruyue??s reply.
In fact, during the past three days, when MO Ruyue was treating the injured, she had seen Yuan Yuan??s busy figure among the injured. It could be seen that she was sincere and did not have the slightest bit of reluctance.
However, she would not be deceived by Yuan Yuan??s appearance. No one knew what she was thinking in her heart.
Speaking of which, she and the Yuan family were considered enemies. Now, the daughter of the enemy came to kowtow to her and beg her to teach her medicine. No matter how she looked at it, it was ridiculous.
??You can leave. I won??t teach you medicine.??
Yuan Yuan was not disappointed when she heard that MO Ruyue had rejected her.
??Yes, then I will leave.??
Yuan Yuan bowed to MO Ruyue again and left the tent.
??She went out just like that???
IVIU nuyue LUI neU LU clSk-? ? nUd.
??Yes, Princess.??
As soon as she left, another person entered the room.
MO Ruyue raised her head and looked over. There was no one else who dared toe in here without informing her, except for Gu Ying.
??What is she doing here???
Gu Ying had wanted to let Wei Yi, who was at the door, inform him, but when he saw Yuan Yuaning out, he did not wait for Wei Yi??s notification and rushed in anxiously.
??Stay away from her.??
Although Yuan Yuan had stayed in the military camp for nine months and had never caused any trouble, she was still enemies with MO Ruyue. She was very worried that MO Ruyue would be with her.
??In the future, that person is not allowed to approach your princess, nor is she allowed to enter the tent.??
Gu Ying looked at Chun Hua and ordered.
??Alright, don??t be so rash. Even if she really wants to do something to me, she??s not my match. I won??t see her in the future.??
MO Ruyue??sst sentence slightly appeased Guying..
Chapter 561 - 561: Good Brothers Through Life and Death
Chapter 561 - 561: Good Brothers Through Life and Death
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
I heard from them that youve been helping to treat the injured for the past three days. I know that youre a doctor who cares about the sick, but you cant ignore your health. If youre exhausted, what will happen to Tang Tang, Si Bao, and me?
When Chun Hua heard this, she tactfully left the tent.
I was busy. Alright, Ill remember it next time.
MO Ruyue was really impressed by him. But thinking about it, she felt that something was wrong with the situation.
Clearly, it should be her, as thedy in charge of the Guan family.
You still dare to criticize me? Look at how much weight youve lost in three days.
She shouldnt have asked such a question. She definitely couldnt care so much on the battlefield, but she had to win the game.
Gu Ying immediately asked someone to bring some firewood into the tent. He was going to start making meat soup for MO Ruyue.
Alright, lets not talk about the second brother. Ill make soup now and well each eat halfter.
The weather was cold now, so he could just stay in the tent and warm himself up by the fire. This would prevent him from being outside and having those blind peoplee over again.
Of course, Gu Ying knew that it was necessary to have some venttion when starting a fire in the house. Therefore, the tent p was half opened, and Wei Yi and Wei Er stood guard at the door.
While Gu Ying was stewing the soup, MO Ruyue rummaged through the two bundles her master had given her and found a few bottles and jars. She was going to give them to Gu Ying.
As the two chatted) MO Ruyue thought of her babies at home. She picked up a brush and ink, preparing to write a letter to her babies.
Gu Ying also felt that he should write a letter to the babies, but he insisted on staying with MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue had wanted Gu Ying to write it) but seeing that he was busy making soup, she thought that the babies knew how ugly her handwriting was, so she did not bother about it. Since her babies did not find their mother ugly, they should not mind her handwriting either.
Thus, one of them was stewing soup and roasting sweet potatoes while telling the other what he wanted to say to the babies. The other one was concentrating on writing a letter and exchanging ideas from time to time.
MO Ruyue felt that it was necessary to tell them some of the things that happened in the military camp. She felt that the children would be very willing to watch it.
Alright.
MO Ruyue carefully put the letter into an envelope and sealed it.
Why dont you go back tomorrow?
Gu Ying suddenly said this. MO Ruyue did not even raise her head and directly replied, If you want to go back, well go back together.
Gu Ying tried to persuade MO Ruyue, but he felt that the more he spoke, the more she refused to listen.
If this ce isnt safe, even if I go back, I wont be safe. I can still do what I can here and feel at ease.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Gu Ying stopped trying to dissuade her.
Then promise me that you will protect yourself.
What about you?
MO Ruyue asked him instead.
Dont worry, Ill definitelye to see you in one piece.
Alright, you can drink the soup now.
Gu Ying was the first toe out and give it to MO Ruyue.
Gu Ying and MO Ruyue enjoyed their time alone, so they started feeding each other again.
When Advisor Jun came to find Gu Ying, he saw a beautiful and warm scene in the tent.
MO Ruyue saw that Gu Ying was busy with his work. She stuffed another sweet potato into his hand and arge piece of meat into his mouth.
He didnt eat anything just now. He didnt know how long they would talk about this matter, and he wouldnt even be able to eat.
Gu Ying wanted to reject it, but MO Ruyue red at him.
Youre my future husband. If you ruin your body like this, my heart will ache too, okay?
Upon hearing MO Ruyues words, Gu Ying happily epted the sweet potato.
Then feed me another piece, ah.
Gu Ying opened his mouth like a chick waiting to be fed.
MO Ruyue fed him two more pieces, only stuffing them into his mouth before he left in satisfaction.
The military advisor outside was speechless. What mistake did he make?
When they were about to reach the generals tent, Advisor Jun could not help but speak to Gu Ying.
Brother, ever since Princess Ming Yue came, youve been stealthily stewing the soup.
Gu Ying listened to the military counselors reproachful and sour tone and stopped to look straight at him.
Princess Ming Yue is my wife, its only natural for me to treat her well. You dont even have the chance to be single like me.
Theres one more thing you have to understand. Im not your familys chef.
After saying that, Gu Ying entered the generals tent, leaving the military advisor standing there in a daze.
F*ck, what he said was true, but every word pierced his heart!
Advisor Jun and Gu Ying finished discussing the next strategy in the generals tent and came out of the tent together. Advisor Jun recalled the heartfelt words Gu Ying had said to him before.
Just thinking about it made him angry. Wasnt Gu Ying bullying him for not having a woman?
He had to find one. He had to win a round with Gu Ying!
I say, Little Brother Xue, you didnt treat me like this before. Ever since Princess Ming Yue came, youvepletely changed.
We are good brothers who have gone through life and death on the battlefield. You are also a real man. We cant be so afraid of your wife. If you get married in the future, how will you survive?
Looking at you like this, if you want to look at other women in the future, wouldnt you have to seek Princess Ming Yues permission?
Brother, its not that I want to criticize you, but youre humiliating your name as General Xue. You cant be a coward. Were brothers after all. Listen to me. Let me tell you
Bang!
Gu Ying did not want to argue with the military advisor. After all, the general still needed this persons strategy. This person was only good at military strategy. In other matters, his brain was filled with shit, right?
Gu Ying couldnt take it anymore. He turned around and gave him a punch, which also fulfilled his previous desire to find him to practice.
He had never had the chance to do so before, and after fighting with the enemy for a few days, he finally stopped and did not let him rest. He was like a fly buzzing in his ear, and he had long disliked him.
Advisor Jun felt a sour and spicy pain on his face. He felt that the corner of his mouth hurt the most. He touched it and realized that he had been beaten up and was bleeding!
Gu Ying why did you hit me? You must be crazy!
Gu Ying grabbed his cor and punched him again.
Advisor Jun was also furious. He wanted to fight Gu Ying, but he was no match for Gu Ying!
He had some brains in battle strategy, and his martial strength was simply insta-killed by Gu Ying.
The military counselor was in too much pain from being beaten by Gu Ying. He wailed to attract the generals attention, and as expected, his wailing attracted the general.
The moment the general came out, he saw Gu Ying pressing down on the military advisor and beating him up. Werent the two of them having a good talk with him in the tent just now? Why did they start fighting the moment they turned around and went out?
Stop! What are you doing?
Gu Ying released the military advisors cor. Before the military advisor couldin, Gu Ying reported to the general first.
Reporting to General, Advisor Jun insulted Princess Ming Yue!
Princess Ming Yue is the Emperors personal advisor. If he insults the Princess, it is equivalent to insulting the Emperor. This subordinate beating him up is only a light punishment.
The general looked at the military advisor. Is there such a thing?
Then its your fault.
The general knew what was going on at a nce. It must be that guys mouth that was asking for a beating..
Chapter 562 - 562: Returning Disappointed
Chapter 562 - 562: Returning Disappointed
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
He knew Gu Yings temper very well. If it wasnt for stepping on his bottom line, he would never fight with his own people. His temper was the best in the military camp.
However, Gu Ying, who had a good temper, was so angry that he attacked.
This showed how much the military counselor had gone too far.
The military advisor was speechless.
If one wanted to say that he didnt say anything bad about Princess Ming Yue, then what he said just now could be considered, but it wasnt true.
Now, in front of the Great General, he did not dare to repeat what he had just said.
The Emperor was also the son-inw of the Great General, and the Great General was also someone who protected his son. He really did not dare to speak nonsense.
The military counselor knelt down in front of the general.
This subordinate feels that Princess Ming Yue is not suitable to be in the army as a woman. Moreover, she is a princess. If anything happens here, this subordinate and the others will not be able to exin to the Emperor. Thus, the best method is to ask Princess Ming Yue to leave the army camp.
Advisor Jun felt that he would definitely offend Gu Ying today, but it was impossible for him to be beaten up by Gu Ying for nothing. He was very unhappy now.
The general didnt want to make Princess Ming Yues decision, but he felt that the military counselor was right. This was a battlefield, and it wasnt a ce where women shoulde. Although the princess had the emperors order, she was also here to deliver 100,000 cotton coats. Now that the cotton coats had been delivered and she had stayed here for a few days, it was reasonable to let her go back.
He also wanted to know what Gu Ying meant, so he subconsciously looked at
Gu Ying.
Gu Ying also knelt down on one knee. Ill reconsider.
The Great General thought about it and understood. Gu Ying really doted on his wife. He definitely didnt want Princess Ming Yue to be in danger here.
Then this matter will be arranged by you. Let Princess Ming Yue leave as soon as possible.
Yes.
Gu Ying was still thinking about how to persuade MO Ruyue to leave when he returned, but he did not expect MO Ruyue to appear right after the General left.
Just now, when was attacking the military counselor, some of his soldiers went to find MO Ruyue.
If they couldnt control General Xue, only the Great General or Princess Ming
Yue could. Of course, it was better to find Princess Ming Yue than the Great
General.
Thus, MO Ruyue had seen everything that had happened.
This was also why the Great General left immediately after he finished speaking. It was because he had already seen MO Ruyue.
Gu Ying immediately brought MO Ruyue back to the tent. He wanted to say something to her, but MO Ruyue spoke first.
I really shouldnt stay here any longer. Ill leave in the afternoon.
You have to take care of yourself. Dont be so impulsive.
Gu Ying also sincerely hoped that MO Ruyue could go back) but now that MO Ruyue was really leaving, he could not bear to let her go.
Then go home and wait for me. After the battle here is over, I will definitely rush home as soon as possible.
The military advisor, who had been beaten up, limped back to his tent. Yuan Yuan saw that his face was bruised and the corner of his mouth was broken. She went to get some medicine.
As a military doctor in the military camp, Yuan Yuan had the obligation to treat all the soldiers.
She had been here for so long and it had be a habit of hers. As long as she saw someone injured, she would immediately go up and treat them.
Advisor Jun thought that Princess Ming Yue had been driven away by him and should be happy. However, he felt that there was a breath in his heart that couldnt be released.
He looked at Yuan Yuan, who was treating the wound on his face, and suddenly had a n.
He looked at Yuan Yuan, who was packing up and preparing to leave.
You have toe over every day to personally apply medicine for me, and you have toe sooner orter. Also, you have to check the food Ive eaten these few days and see if theres anything I cant eat.
Yuan Yuan was a little confused, but she still nodded after listening to the military advisors instructions.
She could only listen to orders here.
Alright, you may leave.
Right. Take care of yourself.
Yuan Yuan, who had already left the tent, almost fell when she heard the military advisorsst sentence. Then, she walked away unnaturally. The military advisor was very satisfied with Yuan Yuan, who seemed to be running away.
Didnt Gu Ying like to show off that he had a wife in front of him, but he didnt?
Humph! So what if you have a wife? Didnt shee over the day before the wedding? And now that shes here, the two of them cant be together!
He would specially find a wife who could be with him all the time. He, Gu Ying, would die from envy!
In the afternoon, MO Ruyue and Chun Hua packed up their things and left the military camp with Wei Yi, Wei Er, and the others. However, the dozen or so military doctors came to see MO Ruyue.
Princess Ming Yue, may I ask you about the suturing technique? We only know how to do it crudely. We dont know how to do it like the one who removed the kidney.
If I can learn the suturing technique, I will be able to save more people in the future.
The leader was the white-bearded Elder Liu.
After a few days, he truly admired MO Ruyue.
All the soldiers who had been treated by MO Ruyue were recovering very well. Those who were seriously injured, such as the young soldier whose leg was about to be amputated, were recovering very well. They were even recovering much faster than those who had not been sutured.
The military doctors saw it, and after a discussion, they decided toe to MO Ruyue together, hoping that she could impart some of her experience to them.
Elder Liu had even asked Yuan Yuan, who knew some things about MO Ruyue, and heard that Princess Ming Yue was a person with great love.
Then Im really sorry. Im a woman, so I shouldnt be in the military camp. Also, the military advisor and the general have given the order that Im going to leave this afternoon.
MO Ruyue smiled helplessly at Elder Liu.
Ah. this
When Elder Liu and the others heard this, they realized that MO Ruyue and the others were carrying their equipment. It was as if they were going to leave with their luggage.
To be exact, if it wasnt for them blocking the path of Princess Ming Yue and the others, they would have already left.
That was true. She was a princess, and she was not from the military. She had stayed here for a few days to help them treat many injuries, so they had forgotten about this matter.
More than a dozen military doctors came in a hurry and left in disappointment.
Gu Ying did not say a word throughout the whole process. After the dozen military doctors left, he personally sent MO Ruyue and the others out of the military camp.
He was currently a general with a mission, so he could not send MO Ruyue further away. He stood at the entrance of the camp and watched MO Ruyue and the others leave until they were out of sight.
However, as soon as Gu Ying returned to the barracks, the Great General sent someone to look for MO Ruyue.
It turned out that the military doctors had discussed it for a while and had gone to tell the general that it was best to keep Princess Ming Yue. Even if Princess Ming Yue was unwilling to teach them the suturing technique, she could save more patients if she stayed in the military camp.
If they watched from the side, they should be able to learn a thing or two. That would be beneficial to the entire military camp.
The Great General felt that it was true. At the same time, he also wrote a memorial to the Emperor.
He couldnt just leave Princess Ming Yue in the military camp without permission. That wouldnt do. At the same time, he sent someone to ask for
MO Ruyues opinion.
Princess Ming Yue has already left.
Gu Ying ignored them and went straight into his tent. He was feeling very upset because he missed Ruyue, so he had no time to waste on them..
Chapter 563 - 563: Prey
Chapter 563: Prey
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When Advisor Jun received the news, he was dumbfounded.
Why didnt youe over earlier?
The military doctors were so frightened by the military advisor that they didnt dare to raise their heads.
In the end, it was Old Liu who spoke, The generals are only free today. We havent even had the chance to speak before Princess Ming Yue left.
He is going to chase Princess Ming Yue and beg her toe back. I wonder if he can make it in time
He and Gu Ying had a little disagreement. That was between men, but they still knew what was important in the big picture.
He was a military advisor who could yield and stand up for himself. He was the best at this. So what if he knelt down and admitted his mistake to Princess Ming Yue?
However, after learning that MO Ruyue had already left, he had no choice but to hope that the memorial that the Great General had given the Emperor would allow Princess Ming Yue to return. At that time, he would just apologize to Princess Ming Yue.
MO Ruyue and the four servants walked to the vige on the edge of the road. When the vigers saw that someone had returned, they all came out to look at him.
The two thousand guards who came to protect MO Ruyue had been ordered to stay in the barracks by the Emperor.
She looked at the thin faces that were pale from hunger and stopped in her tracks.
It was true that there was a war going on here, but the food in the camp wasnt that bad. Although their rations were transported from all directions, it was a little too much for the viges here to be so miserable.
There were many mountains in Xi Liang. Even if this was the border, there were mountains behind the vige.
Didnt they say that relying on the mountain to survive, did these people not understand?
Or could it be that half of the year here was winter, and there was nothing to eat on the mountain?
Wei Yi, go up the mountain and see if there are any prey.
Were going to find the vige chief now. When youe back, go straight to the vige chiefs house.
Yes.
Wei Yi nodded and gave Wei Er a look. Wei Er nodded and he left.
I think there should be.
He remembered that when he had just arrived, Gu Ying had gone to get a robe.
Even if he had gone out to buy it, he had hunted it from the mountains. Therefore, there must be prey on the nearby mountains.
MO Ruyue and the others found out that this vige was called Snow World Vige after they found the vige chiefs house.
As the name suggested, it was a vige guarding the border. The people in the vige were all military households.
MO Ruyue asked the vige chief about the family situation.
The old vige chief did not know that MO Ruyue was a princess, but he knew that she had a powerful backer in the military camp. It was impossible for her to be alone in the military camp since she had stayed in the military camp for so many days.
There are prey on those mountains, but this is not a military vige. The border is so long that almost everyone has to rely on these mountains to survive. Gradually, there are fewer prey, especially in winter.
Please have some tea.
Its crude tea, please dont dislike it.
In this cold winter, drinking something hot could also warm ones body.
The old vige chiefs wife came out with a pot of hot tea. MO Ruyue looked at her skinny hands, which were thinner than chicken feet, and hurriedly took the cup of hot tea with both hands.
Thank you, Auntie.
MO Ruyue took a sip of the tea. The tea was bitter, but it was still warm after drinking it.
Wei Yi returned at this time.
Duke.
Just say it.
Wei Yi was interrupted by MO Ruyue before he could finish his sentence. Wei Yi understood what MO Ruyue meant. She did not want these people to know his identity.
I went to the nearest mountain and did not find any prey. There might be more if we go deeper, but its dangerous.
Wei Yi said concisely.
Thats right. There are big insects in the deep mountains. How would we dare to go there?
The old vige chief sighed.
MO Ruyue put down her cup. Ill go take a look.
Wei Yi followed MO Ruyue back up the mountain while Wei Er and Chun Hua stayed behind to look after the things. They were also prepared to temporarily stay at the vige chiefs house.
It was getting dark. It was too cold here, and it was not suitable to travel at night.
Please be careful!
The old vige chief was worried that something would happen to MO Ruyue here and she would be in deep trouble. Grandpa, dont worry. My princess is very powerful.
Can I borrow your kitchen for a while?
As Chun Hua spoke, she took out a small piece of silver and stuffed it into the old vige chiefs hand. Before she could say anything, the old vige chief hurriedly waved his hand and retreated.
Young Lady, you cant do it. You just want to use the kitchen, why would you need to give this silver?
You dont have to give it to me. You can use the kitchen if you want. It doesnt matter.
Chun Hua smiled as she handed the piece of silver to the old vige chief.
Vige chief, we want to stay in this vige tonight. Can you spare two rooms for us?
It doesnt have to be good, as long as its clean. If it really doesnt work, I can clean it myself. I cant trouble you too much. If we go to an inn, well spend more money than this.
If you dont ept any of it, well be embarrassed to stay here. Its getting dark and its not safe for us to travel in the middle of the night. Vige Chief, please make it convenient for us.
When the old vige chief heard Chun Huas words, he felt that her words were very reasonable. However, if he really wanted to ept the silver, he would feel embarrassed. His old wife pulled him from the side and the old vige chief shamelessly epted the broken silver.
Then this old man will be thick-skinned. Just you wait. We will go and clean up two rooms.
In this vige, only the vige heads house had extra rooms, and it was the best in the vige. Even so, this ce was very simple.
After deciding to stay at the vige chiefs house tonight, Wei Er brought the horse and carriage into the vige chiefs courtyard while Chun Hua prepared dinner in the kitchen.
Wei Er packed up the carriage and came over to help Chun Hua. He also paid attention to the situation in the yard.
When Chun Huas dishes were ready, the fragrance wafted through the entire vige. Coincidentally, MO Ruyue and Wei Yi came down from the mountain at this time.
Wei Er noticed them before they even entered the courtyard. He heard their heavy footsteps as they walked out to wee them. Good heavens, Wei Yi was carrying a colorful adult tiger on her shoulder, and their princess was also carrying a roe deer. She also had a few wild rabbits in her hands.
Wei Er quickly took all the prey from MO Ruyues hands. He felt that they did not have enough hands. Otherwise, they would have carried more.
After entering the courtyard, the old vige chief and his wife also came out to wee him. They were shocked to see Wei Er carrying the roe deer and the hare in his hand!
Where did they get this?
Before he could recover from his shock, he saw Wei Yi enter the courtyard. His eyes widened and he almost lost his soul. He was too old to be scared!
These people were too fierce!
If he wasnt mistaken, that was a big insect, right?!
The few of them entered the courtyard and directly piled all the prey in the middle of the courtyard.
Chun Hua quickly fetched two basins of hot water for MO Ruyue and Wei Yi to wash up.
This, this, this, this, this, that, that, that, that
The old vige chief wanted to say something, but he could not say aplete sentence.
Weve taken care of the big insects on the mountain. In the future, you can let the vigers team up to hunt on the mountain. As long as they dont encounter wolves or wild boars, there shouldnt be any problems.
Tomorrow morning,e up the mountain with me.
The old vige chief could only nod after hearing MO Ruyues words. There were no more questions.. What could he ask? So what if he didnt know how to ask?
Chapter 564 - 564: Planting Bamboo
Chapter 564: nting Bamboo
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
During dinner, MO Ruyue invited them to have some food together. The old vige chief and his wife were not thick-skinned people. They felt that they had already epted the money from the other party and were too embarrassed to eat their food, so they went back to their own room.
After finishing her meal and washing up, MO Ruyue went back to her room to rest. She shared a room with Chun Hua.
It was cold here, but fortunately, they knew how to use a heated brick bed. When they were cooking and boiling water, the brick bed was heated up. The room was still much warmer than the outside, so they slept morefortably at night.
The next day, Chun Hua woke up early and prepared breakfast.
The old vige chiefs wife was about to go to the kitchen to make breakfast, but she was told that their breakfast was ready.
The two elders shamelessly ate the breakfast Chun Hua had given them. After the meal, the old vige chief followed MO Ruyue and the others up the mountain.
On the way up the mountain, MO Ruyue asked the old vige chief why there were only the two of them at home. It turned out that their son had died in battle, and their daughter-inw couldnt take it anymore and ran away. Their two daughters had married off to other ces and woulde back to visit them sometimes. Their grandson had also been sent to their daughters home in the winter.
MO Ruyue brought the old vige chief and two other vigers to a bamboo forest. They demonstrated how to dig with Wei Yi.
MO Ruyue had asked about the ownerless forests here, which meant that they belonged to the Western Liang Country.
The old vige chief did not understand why they hade to this mountain to dig.
The few people who followed him also did not understand. They only felt that these nobles really knew how to y. They came to the mountain to dig in the cold weather. Wasnt this a joke?
If these people had not seen Wei Yi and the others hunt down from the mountainst night, and there were also big worms, they would have lost the patience to watch them dig and y.
Soon, MO Ruyue gave them the answer. They saw a plump bamboo shoot in the hole they dug!
I see that quite a few of the mountains on your side are a little empty. Actually, you can all nt bamboo on the mountains. That way, you can have bamboo shoots to eat even in spring and winter.
Also, if you nt more bamboo, you can also raise bamboo rats, rabbits, and cold-resistant animals on the mountain. In this way, even if you cant hunt other prey in winter, you can still have meat to eat, right?
The old vige chief and the other vigers listened to MO Ruyues words as if they were heavenly books, but their eyes lit up.
The old vige chief and the others also understood how the winter bamboo shoots were dug out. MO Ruyue also taught them how to find the winter bamboo shoots. Without needing her to instruct them, the few of them began to dig. After a while, they also dug out the winter bamboo shoots and were very happy.
The old vige chief immediately knelt down in front of MO Ruyue.
Thank you for your kindness, Madam. Youre a good person and will definitely be rewarded!
Old man, theres no need to be like this.
Wei Yi went forward and helped the old vige chief up.
Quick, Da Jun, hurry back to the vige and ask the vigers to dig some. At least we wont have to eat only beans today.
After a while, many people came to the vige. When they saw them digging for winter bamboo shoots, their eyes lit up as if they were digging for gold instead of bamboo shoots. Then, they all rushed forward to dig for winter bamboo shoots.
Vige Chief, I just heard you say that your vige eats beans all day long. Do you nt a lot of beans every year?
Since there are beans, can you also eat tofu?
MO Ruyue gave up her seat to the vigers and started chatting with the old vige chief again.
Sigh, thats right. We either eat beans or tofu as rice every day. No matter how delicious it is, we can get sick of it.
The old vige chief stopped working and answered the nobles questions.
Then have you ever thought about using beans to exchange for food?
Ive thought about it. I even went to send it off.
Not only is our ce far from the outside world, but its also freezing cold. Its not worth it. We might not be able to sell it even if we give it away.
After chatting with the old vige chief for a long time, MO Ruyue finally understood why the vige was so poor and had no food. It was because the weather, location, and people didnt get along.
Most importantly, they were all military households. Even if they set up stalls to sell their products, they would be looked down upon by others. They would rather buy from others than from them. Even if there were people who bought them, they would keep the price very low. Over time, unless they had no choice, very few people would sell their products. Moreover, the most produced products here were beans and corn.
Because of these two good seeds, the requirements for thend were not so strict.
When the weather was warm and rainy, they could pick a lot of edible mushrooms and store them for food in winter.
Vige Chief, can you tell me what is on this mountain when the weather is warm?
Tell me about the flowers and nts.
The old vige chief was puzzled by MO Ruyues question. He racked his brains to think about what was on the mountain during spring.
Its winter now, so I cant think of anything for a while. Its just the flowers and nts on the mountain.
MO Ruyue thought that it was indeed a little difficult.
She looked at the mountains that were covered in white snow, revealing only many tall trees. It looked very mysterious.
I see that every household here uses charcoal.
Thats right. Were so poor that we cant even eat. How can we have the spare money to buy charcoal?
The old vige chief felt that it would be better to let him spend money to buy charcoal instead of just freezing it.
I see that this mountain is filled with wood. Its quite dense. Why dont you guys burn charcoal and sell it to other ces?
You should be able to earn some money at least without any cost.
This Im afraid the higher-ups wont allow it.
The old vige chief stuttered. If it was anyone else, he would definitely not say it out loud, but he felt that MO Ruyue was a good person.
I might be able to help you with this, and I can also help you with the sales of carbon. However, if I help you confirm this matter, you must guard the mountain here well. You cant cut down randomly. You must cut down one tree and nt one tree after another.
The old vige chief stared at MO Ruyue with wide eyes. He knew that MO Ruyue was capable. Perhaps she was not just saying that. He was very excited.
Madam, if you can really let us use the wood on this mountain, of course, we will cut down one tree and nt one tree ording to Madams instructions. Then you will be our second parent and our great benefactor!
The old Vige Chief was so excited that he wanted to kneel down in front of MO Ruyue again, but MO Ruyue quickly stopped him.
Dont be happy so early, and dont spread it out yet. Once the higher-ups agree to this matter, someone wille over to discuss the process with you.
It wont just be verbal. Its not toote to thank me after its really confirmed.
Yes, yes, Madam. Youre right.
However, the old Vige Chief did not know what to say. He just waited for MO Ruyue to speak.
As the saying goes, you have to rely on the mountain to survive, but you cant just sit there and eat the mountain empty.
You must nt arge number of bamboos in spring. Otherwise, Im afraid that in a few years, you wont even be able to use bamboos.
Madam, dont worry. I will definitely remember to nt more bamboo in spring.
Bamboo was easy to grow. Basically, when one was dug up and moved elsewhere, a small clump would grow there the next year. There was no problem ofcking seeds.
We must urge the vigers to be careful not to hurt the mother bamboo when they dig the bamboo. There wont be any more bamboo shoots next year.
It was also easy to nt. Whoever dug more winter bamboo shoots would nt more in theing year..
Chapter 565 - 565: The Bean Sprout
Chapter 565 - 565: The Bean Sprout
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue and the old vige chief exined some of the essentials to the people who were digging bamboo shoots and then prepared to go down the mountain. It was almost time for lunch. MO Ruyue was a little hungry after walking on the mountain.
However, she was still unwilling to give up. When she went down the mountain, she took a detour from another road. Usually, no one took this road because it was more remote and not so safe.
Perhaps MO Ruyue was just lucky. They turned into this road, and halfway through, Wei Yi and MO Ruyue saw a wild rabbit.
Since he had seen it, how could he let it go? Wei Yi quickly chased after it. Chasing rabbits was a piece of cake for Wei Yi.
However, when he was walking back with the hare by its ear, MO Ruyue suddenly stopped him.
Wei Yi did not understand what was going on either, but he still managed to stop in time, maintaining a raised leg.
Take a step back to the left.
Wei Yi did as he was told.
MO Ruyue had already walked to the spot where Wei Yi had been standing. She pushed a few times and the snow on the slightly raised ground had fallen off, revealing a nt. The nts backer was a small cluster of shrubs, just enough to support a small world for the nt.
Wei Yi and the old vige chief watched as MO Ruyue pulled out the dagger from her leg and began to dig at the ground. As she dug, she broke off a thick branch from the bush and slowly dug at the soil. She looked very careful.
The old vige chief stepped forward, wanting to see what MO Ruyue was doing.
Madam, what do you want to do? Let me do it.
Wei Yi could already see what MO Ruyue was digging. Even though he was not a doctor and did not know what herbs she was digging, he could still recognize the most familiar ginseng.
The old vige chief came over and saw several red fruits on the light pole. He was very excited. This madam was indeed a lucky star. They had lived here for many years and went up the mountain to collect firewood every day. No one had evere across this ginseng.
After a short while, MO Ruyue dug out the whole ginseng. It wasnt small and looked at least a hundred years old.
Because it was winter, the leaves on the pole were long gone, leaving only a green root with a few red fruits on it.
Do any of you recognize herbs?
If you find any herbs on the mountain, as long as they are herbs, no matter what kind of herbs they are, I will take them all.
MO Ruyue was very happy. She could find ginseng on a random trip, especially under the heavy snow. There would definitely be more when the snow melted.
Yes, there is a barefoot doctor in our vige.
The old vige chiefs eyes lit up again.
The medicinal properties of the herbs in the north are all very good. Its exactly what we doctorsck.
Ill give you an address in a while. If you have herbs in the future, send them to me or write to me, I can send someone to get them myself.
Alright!
This madam was indeed a great benefactor!
MO Ruyue was very happy to have a good looking hundred-year ginseng.
When they went down the mountain and entered the vige, they saw two emaciated children holding dead branches that they had picked up. They were already as tall as themselves as they walked home with difficulty in the snow. MO Ruyue could not bear to see the two childrens skinny faces, only their big eyes. She wanted everyone here to have a meal.
Wei Yi, quickly go back with Wei Er. Skin all the prey from yesterday and send some meat to every family in the vige.
Every household in the vige received meat from Wei Yi and Wei Er. Many people were embarrassed to ept it, but when they saw the children at home who were crying and the old people who were about to starve to death, they were thick-skinned enough to ept it.
The vigers personally sent Wei Yi and Wei Er out of the house. Wei Yi and Wei Er only stopped when they asked them to go back.
Originally, they only Imew that a beautifuldy like a fairy hade to the vige, but they did not expect that thisdys heart was as kind as that fairy.
The old vige chief watched helplessly as Wei Yi and Wei Er distributed the big worm. Basically, every family in the vige received a small piece. Just that small piece was enough for them to make a big pot of meat soup.
The old vige chief felt sorry for MO Ruyue. That big insect could be sold for a lot of money in town, yet it was eaten by these people.
MO Ruyue looked at the pained expression on the old vige chiefs face and felt a little amused. It was as if he was giving her meat. She knew that the old vige chief was thinking of her.
By the way, Auntie, can you give me some soybeans? Ill make something delicious for you.
Hey, Ill go get it for you now.
The vige chiefs wife came out with a big bag of soybeans.
Auntie, I want to make a vegetable with beans. Watch from the side and remember the process. In the future, you can cook it yourself, tell others, or sell it. Most importantly, this way, you wont only eat boiled beans and tofu in winter.
The old vige chief and his wife were now very convinced by MO Ruyues words. Not only did the old Vige Chiefs wife stand beside MO Ruyue and watch her actions, but the old Vige Chief also followed closely behind MO Ruyue.
Chun Hua brought over a basin. MO Ruyue poured a lot of soybeans into it and washed it with water. She then scooped out all the dried beans floating on top of the basin.
After the soybeans were washed, they were soaked in clean water again.
At night, when the beans are soaked, you can fish them out.
Because MO Ruyue said that she wanted to use the beans to make other dishes, the old vige chief and his wife would go to see the soaked beans when they were free all day. At night, MO Ruyue said that they could fish them out to control the water.
During the day, MO Ruyue had asked Wei Er to make a wooden box that was as deep as a basin. She washed it clean and brought it over.
The wooden box had not been painted withcquer, so it had a good filter. MO Ruyue had even drilled a hole in the bottom.
It was fine toy a piece of cotton or linen at the bottom of the box, then evenly spread the soaked beans and cover them with ayer of light-blocking cloth. Then, he ced the wooden box at the corner of the kang and kept the temperature at 27 or 28 degrees. He sprinkled some water on the beans every day. After five days, there would be bean sprouts to eat.
Do you understand now? Isnt it very simple? You can make vegetables just like that?
Even I can understand it, let alone this old woman. The old vige chief quickly expressed his opinion.
Its good that you understand. Lets just wait.
MO Ruyue stayed in the vige for five days in order to give the vige something to eat.
Of course, MO Ruyue did not stay there for nothing during these five days. Every day, she would wander around the mountain to see if she could find anything useful to eat.
In these five days. she had also found a few medicinal herbs. It was also because of the ginseng that she had been inspired. When she went up the mountain, she would use a stick to pat the small pile of snow. After the snow fell, she could see what was inside.
MO Ruyue found another two lingzhi, two tubers of knotweed, and a ginseng that was thicker than the one she found earlier.
The vige chief and his wife woke up early in the morning on the sixth day. They had already seen the bean sprout. It was as long as a finger.
The two of them had no idea how to eat the bean sprouts.
This thing looks white and tender. I wonder if itll taste good when dipped in soy sauce.
Its probably delicious.
The old vige chief replied to his wife. He pinched a bean sprout, broke off a little white and tender bud, and put it into his mouth to chew. It was crunchy.
Whats that smell? Is it delicious?
The vige chiefs wife looked at her old man nervously.
No smell.
The old vige chief blinked. But this should be stir-fried like vegetables.
Thats right. Itll be very delicious if you add some salt to the pot and stir-fry it.
MO Ruyue overheard the old couples lovely conversation when she came over.
She was afraid that if she did note out, the old vige chief would throw the beans into his mouth and eat them raw.
These bean sprouts must be cooked before they can be eaten..
Chapter 566 - 566: Hundred Year Old Ginseng
Chapter 566 - 566: Hundred Year Old Ginseng
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The old vige chief felt as if he had been caught, and his face was burning. Lets make some and let Chun Hua stir-fry some for a taste.
Chun Hua didnt use any seasonings. She just poured soybean oil into the pot, added some bean sprouts, and stir-fried them with some salt.
The old vige chief and his wife drank a big bowl of corn porridge with bean sprouts.
Aiya, this bean sprout is called bean sprout, right? Its really good stuff. Its delicious, much more delicious than beans!
Its still early. Why dont the vige chief take some to the town to sell?
MO Ruyue gave a suggestion. The old vige chief hurriedly nodded. He packed up and was about to head to town with the wooden box when he was stopped by MO Ruyue.
If I meet a smart person, I might be able to find out where these bean sprouts came from.
Hey! Look at my blockhead!
The old vige chief and his wife excitedly carried a small basket of bean sprouts to the town. MO Ruyue and the others tidied up and left a silver ingot in the house. However, before they could leave the vige, they were stopped by a few soldiers.
A few soldiers saw MO Ruyue kneeling in front of her and raised her fists above her head. Princess Ming Yue, please return to the camp to save General
Xue
Before the soldiers could finish their words, MO Ruyue rode her horse towards the camp.
The guard who blocked the arrow
MO Ruyue rode her horse back to the camp and rushed towards Gu Yings Battalion Commander.
MO Ruyue panicked when she didnt see Gu Ying. She threw the battalionmander out and grabbed a soldier Wheres Gu Ying?
Princess Ming Yue, General Xue is there.
MO Ruyue ran towards the tent that the soldier had pointed out. As soon as she entered, she found Gu Ying standing in front of a hospital bed. She ignored the looks that the others were giving her and sized Gu Ying up. She heaved a sigh of relief when she saw that he was fine.
Well talk about thister. Take a look at him first, the arrow is poisoned.
MO Ruyue turned to look at the soldier lying on the bed. The more she looked at him, the more familiar he looked. However, she could not care less about whether he was familiar or not. Chun Hua still had good eyesight and had already carried MO Ruyues medicine box into the room.
The man was unconscious at the moment, and there was a poisonous arrow in his chest. The other military doctors were helpless about this. They did not dare to pull out the arrow easily, afraid that if they pulled it out, the man would die.
Scissors.
Disinfect cotton.
Fine cotton cloth.
Two hourster, MO Ruyue had treated the guards arrow wound.
MO Ruyues eyes widened when she saw the soldiers appearance, as she assumed that Chun Hua had wiped away the blood stains and dirt on his face.
Why is he here?
Gu Ying recognized it as well.
He blocked the arrow for me. Otherwise, I would be the one lying here right now.
Can you tell me what happened?
MO Ruyue had long known that MO Yu was the Emperors secret guard. His appearance in the military camp was definitely not a coincidence.
Gu Ying did not understand why MO Yu was in the military camp either. He also knew that MO Yu was Ji Hongs secret guard.
It was impossible for a person with the identity of a secret guard to leave the Emperors pce and appear at the border. Then he must havee here for a purpose, but he did not know what his purpose was.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying stood guard by the unconscious MO Yus bed. The two of them only whispered to each other after the others had left.
Neither of them wanted to reveal MO Yus identity as the Emperors secret guard to more people, not even the Great General.
What if MO Yu had some secret to carry out a mission and was exposed by them? That would be a bad thing.
Furthermore, MO Yu had been in trouble to save Gu Ying and Sheng. They could not let a fourth person, other than the two of them and MO Yu himself) know MO Yus true identity.
MO Ruyue was d that she had arrived fast enough and had a powerful
antidote pill with her. Otherwise, MO Yu might not have been able to survive.
MO Ruyue felt that it was better to prepare more antidote pills.
Wei Yi and Wei Er were guarding the entrance of the tent. MO Ruyue and Gu Ying could talk to each other inside. If anyone came, Wei Yi and Wei Er would warn them.
MO Ruyue didnt try to y dumb with Gu Ying and asked him directly.
How long are you going to fight this battle?
This war was going on for too long. It was almost ten months. If it continued, would the national treasury be able to hold on?
Looking at the injured soldiers, he felt really bad.
She also knew that it was not easy to fight a war. The casualties on both sides were about the same, which showed that the strength of both sides was about the same.
The reason why we fought for so long was because the enemy might have a powerful strategist.
Every time we attacked and defended, the enemy always seemed to know. In the end, they would always be able to fight evenly with us, and sometimes even have the upper hand.
MO Ruyue knew that there was something wrong with this. How could the other party know about the operation here every time? No matter how godly a person was, it was impossible for him to be so godly.
Moreover, if he was really that godly, the enemy should have won the battle long ago. They wouldnt have dragged on with Xi Liang for nine months.
Then have you ever thought that there are enemy spies in your camp?
Gu Ying frowned.
Of course I have.
But Ive checked several times. Ive checked almost everyone, but I cant find the person with the problem.
However, I recently felt that there was something wrong with one person. I was about to tell the general about it when the enemy attacked again. It was obvious that they knew something was nned in advance.
If it wasnt for MO Yu blocking the arrow for me, the arrow would have gone straight for my heart.
MO Ruyue knew that if the poison arrow really pierced Gu Yings heart, he would not be able to survive.
Gu Ying connected the previous events. This time, the w was even more obvious. He would not believe that there was no spy.
Who is it? Since he was already suspicious, you should quickly capture that person and control him. What was there to wait for?
ording to MO Ruyues method, no matter if there was a problem, as long as it was a suspect, even if it wasnt a big deal, they would still have to capture that person and lock him up for strict interrogation.
Ill report to the Great General now. Ill leave this to you.
Gu Ying stood up and went to find the general. The sooner this matter was resolved, the better.
After Gu Ying left, Chun Hua, Wei Yi, and Wei Er were summoned by MO
Ruyue.
MO Ruyue looked at MO Yus condition and estimated that he would wake up in half a day at most.
Chun Hua, take the two ginsengs I dug up from the mountain and divide the hundred-year-old one into three portions to make some health porridge.
MO Yu had suffered a great crime this time. He had to replenish his vitality well. Even so, he would need more than half a year to recover the vitality he had lost.
She did not feel the slightest bit for the hundred-year-old ginseng she had taken out. Just as Gu Ying had said, if it was not for MO Yu, he would have been the one who had fallen.
Chun Hua went to cook the porridge while MO Ruyue left the ce to Wei Yi and Wei Er. She asked them to take turns to watch over MO Yu. If they found anything wrong with MO Yu, they would immediately go to Gu Yings tent to call her.
He had been riding a horse from the Snow World Vige, and he had been focusing on performing surgeries on MO Yu. He was a little tired now.
The tent that the general had set up for her was the tent that MO Yu was lying in, so she went back to Gu Yings tent.
When MO Ruyue came out from the next room, she found that there were people making a ruckus in the Great Generals tent. It was somewhat chaotic.
Gu Ying, youre ndering me. You have to be honest!
Why did you lock me up for no reason? If you lock me up, the Great General will have no strategist. Who can bepetent? If anything happens, you will bear the responsibility yourself!
It was the military advisor who was roaring..
Chapter 567 - 567: The Princess Is Not a God
Chapter 567: The Princess Is Not a God
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue listened to the military advisors words. Did Gu Ying think that the military advisor was a spy, so he wanted to lock him up?
She really couldnt tell, but she understood after thinking about it. Ever since she came, Advisor Jun had been looking down on her. There was probably a reason, but she still had to pay attention to evidence and interrogate her.
MO Ruyue was not in the mood to care about those things. Just as she was about to turn around and enter the tent, she noticed a sackcloth figure shing past the tent next door, which was also the tent MO Yu was currently in. The figure looked extremely familiar.
Nio Ruyue didnt hesitate to go around the tent and follow the person who was about to disappear.
This person was acting sneakily and MO Ruyue subconsciously didnt want him to discover her. However, when she saw who it was, she was surprised and felt that it was only natural.
That person was none other than Yuan Yuan.
Logically speaking, she was a military doctor. If she wanted to see a patient, she could just pay directly. However, she was sneaking around. This persons behavior was very suspicious.
MO Ruyue did not want to alert the enemy, because Yuan Yuan had entered her own tent and did note out.
If she rushed in now and asked her anything, she would definitely not admit it.
Nio Ruyue went to look for Wei Yi.
Cuttlefish 1 will take care of everything. Wei Yi, you go and keep an eye on Yuan Yuan. Dont alert her and dont let her discover you. You have to watch her every move.
If there was a problem, she would report it, but it had to be under the condition that she did not take action.
Yes.
Wei Er watched enviously as Wei Yi went out to do missions. He really wanted to go too.
Wei Er looked at MO Yu. This could be considered a difficult task. He did not know if he should carry the urinal for him.
At this time, the military advisor was no longer noisy. He looked at Gu Ying angrily with red eyes and was taken away to be watched.
The general agreed to lock him up because the enemy had seen through his actions. He would rather kill the wrong person than let him go, but he only locked up the military advisor for interrogation.
MO Ruyue felt that the military advisor was simply a useless military advisor!
Its purely a decoration.
Perhaps by locking him up, they could end the war immediately.
However, MO Ruyues wish to rest was not fulfilled.
She looked at the little soldier who came to invite her and was unmoved. Go tell your general that this princess is someone he can order around?
This
The little soldier did not expect the Princess, who had been so warm before, to say such words. Moreover, hadnt she taken the initiative to treat their injuries before?
Thinking about it, she was a princess. How could she be at his beck and call?
The little soldier retreated. This was not something a small figure like him could casually make the decision.
In fact, it wasnt the general who had asked MO Ruyue to treat the wounded. It was the military doctors who had asked the soldier to invite them.
Those military camps had encountered helpless injuries. This time, there were even more injuries and casualties than before.
MO Ruyue had saved Cuttlefish from the poisoned arrow, so she thought of him.
After the soldier left, MO Ruyuey down in her clothes. She was really tired.
In the generals tent, the Great General was discussing the next n and strategy with Gu Ying. Someone reported from outside, hoping that the Great General could invite MO Ruyue to treat the other wounded.
The general let someone in. Where are the military doctors?
The Great Generals skin wasnt thick enough to that extent. He had chased them away previously, and now he was asking them to help him treat his soldiers?
Although he really hoped that MO Ruyue could go, MO Ruyue was a real princess. Even if she was a princess halfway, she was still a princess. She was not someone a general like him could order around.
The memorial that was sent to the capital did not receive a reply so quickly. It had only been six days.
Gu Ying pretended not to hear anything and sat at the side drinking tea.
General, the military doctor and the others have encountered a few more troublesome patients. If Princess Ming Yue were to help, they might be able to preserve their hands and feet. Otherwise, they would definitely face the result of amputation.
Gu Ying didnt feel good about what the soldier said, but he wouldnt kidnap his sweetheart because of so-called morality.
Not only would he not do that, but if MO Ruyue was unwilling, he would stand on her side even if it was the Great Generals order.
The Great General didnt feel good when he heard this. He hoped that all of those soldiers would be able to return home alive.
He looked at Gu Ying and saw that Gu Ying did not move or look at them. He knew that he had offended him long ago.
Are theypletely helpless?
The soldier knew that the general was referring to the military doctors.
Yes, otherwise, I wouldnt have asked this lowly one to invite Princess Ming Yue over.
The Great General felt that he had to clean up the sins he hadmitted, so he personally went to Gu Yings tent.
Seeing that Chun Hua was stewing something to eat in front of the tent, the Great Generals expression softened as he asked Chun Hua.
Is the Princess in the tent?
Shh.
Chun Hua ced her index finger between her lips.
Princess rushed over from the Snow World Vige without stopping. She didnt even have a sip of water when she got here. She only treated the poisoned person for two hours and is now so tired that she has fallen asleep.
Chun Huas tone of voice made everyone present whisper along with her, and their breathing slowed down. Then I wonder when Princess will wake up?
How would this servant know?
Chun Hua still lowered her voice and looked at the general in surprise.
He looked at her with a look that said, Are you an idiot? How could I know such a profound question?
The Great General was not angry. This was all his fault.
Thus, he walked to the curtain of Xue Chengs tent, lifted his battle robe, and knelt down on one knee.
When the soldiers saw the general like this, they were shocked and hurriedly went forward to help him, but they were stopped by the generals gaze.
This general implores Princess Ming Yue to save those pitiful soldiers!
Everything that happened before was this generals fault. Princess Ming Yue can punish this general however she wants. As long as Princess Ming Yue agrees to save those soldiers, this general is willing to agree to any of Princess Ming Yues requests!
The Great Generals voice was neither loud nor soft, but it was enough for MO Ruyue to hear.
Great General, what are you doing?
Princess Ming Yue isnt a God, shes just an ordinary person. Arent you trying to make her do something wrong?
If she didnt go for treatment, or if she went for treatment, but couldnt save him because she couldnt take it, would it be her fault?!
Gu Ying was very angry when he saw the general like this. Although the general was a good general, a good general could not bully her Ruyue!
At this moment, he did not care that the Great General was his superior. At most, he would strip off his battle robe and go to the pce to beg for forgiveness. He could not let his Ruyue suffer like this.
Its my fault, but those soldiers might still be saved. I dont want to see them be useless at such a young age.
Of course, if they really couldnt be cured, it would be their fate. No one would me Princess Ming Yue.
However, there was no other way. Those quacks didnt have the ability to cure them. Otherwise, this general wouldnt havee to beg Princess Ming Yue. Gu Ying was angered by the generals words. If he was not the general, he would have punched him long ago.
What did you do earlier?
Chapter 568 - 568: He Really Has a Problem
Chapter 568: He Really Has a Problem
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
He had listened to the words of the spy and chased his Ruyue away. How could he have the face to force his Ruyue to save his soldiers now?
No matter what, you are not allowed to force Princess Ming Yue, I will report this matter.
Gu Ying had already decided that he would definitely tell the Emperor about this.
Otherwise, if these people were to add fuel to the fire and spread it to the Emperors ears, his Ruyue would be the one who was not human inside and outside.
The general was angry, but he still had a good temper.
l will personally report my dereliction of duty to the Emperor and personally apologize!
Ya! Great General, what are you doing?
Was he injured?
Aiyo, get up quickly, let me check your pulse.
Gu Ying, I dont want to criticize you, but dont you see that the general has fallen? Come over and help him up.
MO Ruyue came out of the tent and was surprised to see the kneeling Great General. She looked as if she was wondering why the general had fallen.
The Great General stood up and did not allow MO Ruyue to take his pulse. Im fine, Its not that Im injured. Its just that some of my soldiers might be disabled. I hope Princess Ming Yue can help me take a look.
The Great General felt that his understanding of MO Ruyue had been refreshed. This woman was really too smart. She actually pretended not to know that he was kneeling and begging her. This was also saving his face as a general.
Oh, okay, okay. Ill go now. Take me there.
MO Ruyue went into the room and took out the medicine box. Chun Hua wanted to follow her.
Chunhua, you dont have to follow me. General Xue will help me with the medicine box. You can make some porridge for that little soldier when he wakes up.
Chun Hua knew that the little soldier the Princess was talking about was Cuttlefish. Seeing that her husband was following the Princess, she felt at ease and continued to cook the porridge. She wanted to cook more so that the Princess and her husband could eat some nourishmentter.
MO Ruyue went to the tent with the most serious injuries. Almost all the military doctors were there, but Yuan Yuan, who was usually there, was not.
Qi Lao saw MO Ruyue and quickly came over to greet her.
Princess, you came at the right time. Quicklye over and take a look at this person. His hamstring is broken. I wonder if it can be reconnected? MO Ruyue walked over quickly.
Without waiting for MO Ruyues instructions, Gu Ying fetched a basin of water and opened the first aid kit to add some disinfectant powder into the water. After MO Ruyue disinfected her hands, Gu Ying disinfected his own hands as well.
An hourter, the soldiers hamstring was reconnected. All the military doctors and the other injured soldiers were very happy.
MO Ruyue then realized that the Great General had been following them until now.
Princess, youve worked hard.
This general will definitely write a memorial to the Emperor for everything the Princess has done for the military camp.
At the same time, the general was also sighing at Gu Yings good luck. He wanted to snatch such a good girl home to be his wife.
MO Ruyue continued to treat the next patient while the general went to interrogate the military advisor.
Old Liu had been helping MO Ruyue out. MO Ruyue felt that Gu Ying was wasting his manpower here. Besides, the more people there were, the more bacteria there would be in the air. She let him do his own thing. The military doctors would be able to help her.
After Gu Ying left, MO Ruyue thought of Yuan Yuan and asked Old Liu.
By the way, why didnt I see Yuan Yuan today?
Old Liu looked around but did not see Yuan Yuan. He did not know where she went either.
I dont know about this.
At this moment, another younger military doctor said, l know. Miss Yuan went to town and said she wanted to buy some things.
Oh
Right, as far as I know, this Yuan Yuan is not the daughter of a criminal. She was sent here, but she can leave the military camp at will?
When MO Ruyue asked this question, the other military doctors expressions changed.
After MO Ruyue finished treating thest patients wound, she washed her hands and cleaned the medicine box.
Its been half a day since I arrived, but I havent seen Yuan Yuan return. Can she really leave for such a long time?
Your military camp is really lenient towards the families of guilty officials.
The military doctors looked at each other. It was indeed inappropriate for Yuan Yuan to be out for so long, and it was not the first time.
However, they were the ones who released it.
The military doctor who had told MO Ruyue and Yuan Yuan to go out thought for a while and decided to speak.
Princess Ming Yue, that Yuan Yuan has a good rtionship with the military advisor. It was the military advisor who gave her the warrant.
There was indeed something wrong with the military advisor!
If Gu Ying hadnt said that using the truth powder would easily alert the enemy, and the mastermind behind the scenes would definitely be hiding, they would have scattered the powder long ago.
Oh, when did that happen? Could it be that the military advisor has taken a fancy to Yuan Yuan? Otherwise, he wouldnt be so good to her, right?
Thats right. Ever since Yuan Yuan came to the military camp, shes like a
piece of fat meat that fell into a group of dogs. If it wasnt for the fact that everyone could tell that Advisor Jun was interested in her, he wouldnt have
Old Wang, what nonsense are you talking about? Dont dirty the Princess ears!
Old Liu hurriedly berated Old Wang. If it wasnt for Princess Ming Yue, he really wanted to kick the Old Wang.
How could he spout nonsense in front of the Princess? He was not afraid that General Xue woulde over and p him.
Nio Ruyue naturally knew what Old Wang wanted to say, so she held back herughter.
Old Wangs description of them as a bunch of dogs was really apt. They were just a bunch of single dogs.
However, she understood what she needed to hear. Alright, Ill leave this ce to you guys. Im exhausted.
Call me if you have any questions.
MO Ruyue carried the medicine box and left the tent.
Princess, I will help you send this medicine box over.
Old Liu knew that Wei Yi or the maidservant Chun Hua would usually carry the medicine box when MO Ruyue came and went. Now that she was alone, she would definitely be too tired to carry it.
Its fine, its fine. I can still carry this part of the road. You guys go ahead.
There are so many patients to take care of.
MO Ruyue rejected his kindness, so Old Liu could only watch as MO Ruyue left with the medicine box. When she left, Old Liu gave him a good scolding.
Old Wang also felt that he had misspoken.
l see that Princess Ming Yue is easy to talk to. Shes so close to the people, Ive already forgotten about her.
After MO Ruyue returned to Gu Yings tent, she called Gu Ying over and told him everything she had heard from the military doctors. She also told him that she had asked Wei Yi to follow Yuan Yuan.
Ive always thought that there was something wrong with him, but I didnt expect that there really was something wrong with him.
You eat first, Ill go find the general now.
MO Ruyue nodded. These things could not be dyed. Gu Ying did not allow her to use the truth powder, so she could not help much. She could only tell him what she knew.
Princess, Cuttlefish is awake.
Chun Hua ran over to report, and MO Ruyue perked up to look at Cuttlefish.
Miss, do you know what the first thing that Cuttlefish said when he woke up was?
When Chun Hua finished cooking the porridge, she went to see if Cuttlefish had woken up, but she happened to see him open his eyes.
Say what?
The first thing he asked when he woke up was where General Xue was and if he was alright.
MO Ruyue felt that MO Yu did note here for no reason. She guessed that the Emperor had asked him toe here to protect Gu Ying.
Her royal brother did not call her White because he was a meat shield for the cuttlefish.
Yes, make his porridge delicious. Hes your Prince Consorts savior.
Yes, Princess. I will definitely cook for him.
In town, Wei Yi had been secretly following Yuan Yuan. He saw that she first visited a few shops, then she was obviously observing if anyone noticed her.
Finally, she walked into a very remote alley and entered a small corner door.
He waited for a while and checked. Then, he quietly climbed over the wall and onto the roof.
It was a small courtyard with three main rooms and two side rooms. In the east room of the main room was a young man with a pale face..
Chapter 569 - 569: Empty Courtyard
Chapter 569 - 569: Empty Courtyard
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Young Master Su, are you feeling better?
l brought these for you. Yu Fei is suspected by Gu Ying and has been locked up. I might not be able toe over for a while.
Can you tell me what happened?
The man whom Yuan Yuan addressed as Young Master Su coughed, and his face turned even paler.
Young Master Su, how are you? Is your condition serious again?
Didnt you take the medicine I gave you?
As Yuan Yuan spoke, she held Young Master Su l s hand and began to take his pulse.
Its fine. I was too happy to see you and was a little excited, so
Before he finished speaking, he had already expressed his intention.
Yuan Yuans face flushed red, and Wei Yi, who was peeking from the roof, was baffled.
Didnt they say nothing? Why are they blushing? Why dont the two of you talk about serious matters?
Wei Yiid on the roof and listened to the two of them talk about disgusting things for half a day. Yuan Yuan finally wanted to leave. If she didnt go back now, she was afraid that she would be discovered.
Young Master Su looked at Yuan Yuan, who was walking out of the room.
I will always be waiting for you.
Yes.
Yuan Yuan finally left the courtyard reluctantly. She looked around and quickly walked out of the alley.
Wei Yi used all his strength and caught up to Yuan Yuan without making a
sound.
On the way, Yuan Yuan rushed back to the military camp. Wei Yi saw that she had returned to her ce, so he went to look for MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue was preparing to rest when Chun Hua told her that Wei Yi had returned and had something to report.
Well, it seemed that she wouldnt be able to rest untilte at night.
Quickly let him in.
Wei Yi went down on one knee as soon as he entered the tent. MO Ruyue waved at him.
l already said that I dont want these formalities. Hurry up and say that we dont want to waste time.
Yes, sir!
This subordinate followed Yuan Yuan all the way to the town. She went to a remote alley. At the end of the alley, there was a small courtyard. There was a
man living there. Yuan Yuan called the man Young Master Su. As for who he was, this subordinate did not know.
Yuan Yuan told Young Master Su that the military advisor had been arrested and that she might not be able to get out for a while.
This subordinate thinks that Yuan Yuans words might alert the man and he might change his position tonight.
However, this subordinate had already asked the two little beggars to secretly keep an eye on him. If he moved his position, he would definitelye out from the courtyard.
Then, this subordinate chased Yuan Yuan all the way back.
Yuan Yuan returned to her own tent.
Quickly go and call your Prince Consort over.
Chun Hua had already dashed out after MO Ruyue finished speaking.
Gu Ying arrived shortly after. Ruyue, whats so important?
MO Ruyue said simply.
There is a person in town who should be a spy of the enemy country. Yuan Yuan told him that you have captured the military counselor.
If that person wanted to leave, he would have to wait for the city gates to open.
If they didnt catch him tonight, they might not be able to catch him when the city gates opened tomorrow morning.
MO Ruyue opened her medicine kit and took out two packets of powder from the mezzanines and stuffed them into Gu Yings hands.
Take this with you. You should use it when necessary. End it as soon as possible. I want to go home.
Gu Ying no longer hesitated. If that person was really an enemy spy, using truth powder would be the best.
Time was of the essence, so Gu Ying went to the generals residence and repeated what MO Ruyue had said to him. After that, he ordered a group of people to quickly and secretly go to town.
MO Ruyue ignored everyone else and threw herself onto the bed. She felt like she was going to be an immortal if she didnt sleep.
At the same time, the general had also sent people to monitor Yuan Yuan, but he did not restrict her movements. At this moment, Yuan Yuan did not know that she was being monitored.
She always made some noise when she came back. Old Wang, who was more concerned about her, heard it and even came out to greet her.
Actually, Old Wang liked Yuan Yuan a little. Just as he said, if it wasnt for the military advisor standing in front of them, they would have broken their heads for Yuan Yuan.
Although this girl was not very good-looking, she was still the type of girl from a humble family. The main thing was that she was the only woman in the military camp. Who didnt want to be close to her?
Let alone women, even a female fly was loved by everyone.
Miss Yuan, youre back. You went out for a long time this afternoon.
Yuan Yuans body stiffened at the question, but she maintained a smile on her face.
Doctor Wang, its already sote and you still havent slept?
l bought a lot of things this afternoon. I was thinking of buying more and going out lesster. Its not convenient to go out. Thats true, haha. Then you should rest early.
As he spoke, Lao Wang returned to his tent.
He didnt tell Yuan Yuan that MO Ruyue had asked him about her going out. He couldnt say such things carelessly. It was a critical moment. Even if it wasnt a critical moment, he still remembered his duty as a military doctor.
Unless they were asked by the general, they would not say a word.
However, he was stopped by Yuan Yuan when he turned around.
Oh, by the way, Doctor Wang, when I went out this morning, I found that the military advisor and General Xue had a conflict. Do you know what happened?
Doctor Wang wouldnt be stupid just because he had a little admiration for Yuan Yuan. This woman obviously saw this and was using him to get information.
How can we know about this? Besides, weve been taking care of the injured all day today. We dont know about those things. If you didnt tell me, I wouldnt nave mown about that.
If you want to know, you can just ask the military advisor yourself. You two are so close, he will definitely tell you.
Doctor Wangs words made Yuan Yuans face stiffen again. Hehe, I was just asking.
Its gettingte, go to bed early.
Yuan Yuan returned to her tent after she finished speaking.
When Gu Ying brought his men to town, he went straight to the small courtyard, but found that it was empty.
Wei Yi quickly went to look for the two little beggars that he had told him about. The beggar behind the house had disappeared and he went to the front yard. Fortunately, the beggar guarding the front yard was still there.
The little beggar had specially waited for Wei Yi toe over. When he saw Wei Yi, his eyes lit up.
This was a rich man. He had given them one tael of silver each just to keep an eye on them. Now, he was still waiting here for another tael of silver.
Master, you came so quickly. Not long ago, about half an hour ago, the man in the small courtyard climbed over the wall from the backyard and dressed himself up as a beggar. At this moment, my friend is following him. He has already marked it.
Wei Yi immediately threw a tael of silver to the little beggar.
Well done. After you find the person, Ill give you another two taels.
When the little beggar heard that there was still two taels of silver, he was full of energy. He immediately led Wei Yi and the others to follow the marks left by hispanions.
After walking for less than an incense sticks time, they met Young Master Su in a run-down temple. Wei Yi recognized Young Master Su who was disguised as a beggar at a nce and went forward to capture him.
Young Master Su e s eyes were filled with panic. However, after he was caught, he quickly calmed down.
Gu Ying looked at this persons performance and knew that this persons identity was definitely not simple.
It was not convenient here, so he tied him up and brought him back to the military camp.
Of course, before tying him up, he had pressed his acupuncture points to prevent anyplications..
Chapter 570 - 570: The Princess Left Outside?
Chapter 570 - 570: The Princess Left Outside?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue slept all the way until the next morning when she was woken up by the noise outside.
The moment she woke up, Chun Hua heard themotion and entered the room to serve her.
Chun Hua wasbing MO Ruyues hair.
Princess, that spy from the enemy kingdom has been caught. I heard that he is the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom.
When MO Ruyue heard that they had caught the person, and it was the Crown Prince, her drowsiness instantly disappeared.
Aiya, dontb thoseplicated hairstyles. Just do it casually. Ill bring you to see the show.
She just wanted to see what the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom looked like. He had the guts toe to their side to be a spy and even seduced the only female doctor in the military camp. He was quite capable.
When Chun Hua heard that the princess wanted to bring her to watch the show, her hands moved faster.
Princess, you should eat something first. You have been so tired these two days that you have lost weight.
Aiyo, this little sweet-talker, who said Im not eating anymore?
Take all the buns and lets eat as we walk.
Speaking of which, she had contributed more than half of the credit for capturing the crown prince of the enemy country. She could not miss such a bigmotion.
Then, the patrol team saw Princess Ming Yue holding two buns in one hand and eating as she walked. The maidservant beside her would bring the bowl to her mouth from time to time, and Princess Ming Yue would drink two mouthfuls.
The fragrance wafted far away, causing the eyes of the patrolling guards to turn crooked.
MO Ruyue brought Chun Hua to the tent where Young Master Su was kept. They had just finished two buns, but Chun Hua had already finished the ginseng chicken soup porridge.
She had just arrived when Gu Ying came out with red eyes. It was obvious that he had not slept all night.
MO Ruyue broke the bun in her hand into two halves and brought one half to his mouth.
Hurry up and eat.
The Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom was very determined. He had sprinkled a pack of truth powder, but he did not reveal where the enemys weak point was.
Gu Ying hade out to look for MO Ruyue. When he saw MO Ruyue, he wanted to say something, but his mouth was stuffed with meat buns.
How fragrant!
After a busy night, he was indeed sleepy and hungry, but he was still in high spirits. The spy he caught was really the Crown Prince of the enemy country. With such a big hostage in his hands, this battle would soon be won.
You didnt sleep the whole night. Even if youre interrogating a criminal, you dont have to be in such a hurry. At least you can sleep for a while. Dont tire yourself out, while the criminal is still full of energy.
Gu Ying had just swallowed the bun in his mouth when MO Ruyue stuffed the other half into his mouth. He finished the two buns in a few bites and was finally able to speak.
l was just about to look for you.
As he spoke, Gu Ying leaned closer to MO Ruyue and whispered into her ear.
That truth powder of yours was useless against that person. He was able to keep a lot of secrets and not say them out loud. Although his expression was a little painful, he actually held on. When did you make that powder?
Is it expired?
He had learned the term expired from MO Ruyue.
Before he knew this term, he didnt even know that many things had expired.
MO Ruyue blinked her big eyes.
Theres such a capable person. His mind is really firm.
Then didnt you sprinkle more?
l spilled a whole packet on his face, and he was still the same.
Chun Hua, go back to the medicine box and bring me the few packets of medicinal powder in thepartment.
Yes.
Chun Hua epted the order and quickly ran to look for something.
Hey,ter, get a bowl of porridge for your General Xue and a few steamed buns. Bring some more. I see some dumplings too.
Let Wei Yi help you.
Yes, Princess.
The one who had already walked away answered loudly.
Can I go in and take a look?
Didnt I ask you toe and take a look?
MO Ruyue followed Gu Ying into the tent and found that there was only one person in the tent. He was in a cage, his face covered in dirt. He was dressed in a beggars robe. It was really hard on him. He was dressed like this, but he was still caught by them.
The Crown Prince of the enemy kingdom had been tortured by them for an entire night and had not rested much. Moreover, he had to use all his willpower to resist that medicinal powder.
He didnt know what kind of medicine that person had given him, but he knew that the medicine made it easy for him to reveal the secrets in his heart. When he found out, he could only use all his energy to resist the medicine, and his lips were bitten.
Gu Ying had just gone out and he fell asleep immediately.
Seeing this, Gu Ying waved at the soldier outside the door. The soldier brought a basin of cold water and poured it over the enemy countrys Crown Prince.
Crash!
Hiss Cough cough cough
The Crown Prince of the enemy kingdom was woken up by a basin of cold water. MO Ruyue felt a chill run down her spine for him.
When the Crown Prince of the enemy nation opened his eyes, he saw a beautiful woman in front of him.
Mother
What!
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying could clearly hear and understand.
The Crown Prince was clearly looking at MO Ruyue and calling her mother.
Has he been charmed silly by you? MO Ruyue turned to ask Gu Ying.
l dont know. Gu Ying shook his head.
Only then did the Crown Prince realize that the person in front of him was not his mother. It was just that he was seeing things. He had already been woken up by a basin of cold water. In his muddle-headedness, he subconsciously thought that he had seen his mother. However, this woman really looked like his mother.
MO Ruyue looked at the Crown Prince of the enemy kingdom in front of her and deeply felt that being a member of the royal family was sometimes quite difficult.
Hey, dont you think this person looks familiar?
MO Ruyue felt that something was wrong.
After being sshed with arge basin of water, the dirt on the Crown Princes face was washed away, revealing his original appearance.
Gu Ying took a closer look and realized that she looked familiar.
The two of them stared at the Crown Prince of the enemy kingdom. The Crown Prince of the enemy kingdom felt his hair stand on end under their gazes, but he was also staring at MO Ruyue.
Gu Ying realized that this person looked just like his Ruyue!
Gu Ying looked at MO Ruyue and then at the Crown Prince of the enemy country. His expression also made MO Ruyue react.
No way!
MO Ruyue rubbed her face.
Chun Hua, quickly go and get a mirror.
Chun Hua had juste in with steamed buns and dumplings when she heard MO Ruyues instructions and ran to get a mirror.
Um, you called me Mother just now. Your mother looks very simr to me, and you look like your mother too!
Therefore, the three of them were very simr!
MO Ruyue cursed in her heart.
She couldnt be a Princess that was abandoned by an enemy country, right?!
How melodramatic!
This enemy country seemed to be a northern country.
The Crown Prince looked at MO Ruyue without saying a word.
Gu Ying was a little irritable.
He had also thought of what MO Ruyue had thought of. If that was the case, MO Ruyue might very well be in danger.
No matter what, he had to stay by MO Ruyues side and never let anyone hurt him!
Princess, mirror.
Chun Hua panted as she brought the mirror over.
MO Ruyue took the mirror andpared it with the Crown Prince.
Really Yes!
MO Ruyue stuffed the mirror back into Chun Huas hands.
Since we look alike, can you tell me the weakness of your military camp? The Crown Prince stared at MO Ruyue in disbelief.
Nio Ruyue did not care if she was really rted to the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom, but she was now a citizen of Xi Liang.
Also, it was because of the war that this person in front of her initiated that her future husband left the day before the wedding. Until now, she had not even gotten married!
Why cant I say it?
You are now a hostage of our Xi Liang. If you cooperate obediently, there is still a chance to let you go.
Otherwise You understand..
Chapter 571 - 571: You Won’t Die If You Don’t Court Death
Chapter 571 - 571: You Wont Die If You Dont Court Death
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Am I that stupid?
Su Luo looked at the person in front of her who was very likely to be her younger sister. She couldnt be angry at all, but her question was very piercing.
Shouldnt he ask about their rtionship first?
Or why did they look so alike?
Bring it over.
MO Ruyue extended her hand toward Gu Ying.
Gu Ying gave her another pack of truth powder and saw her take out two more packs of the same powder from her sleeve pocket.
If one pack doesnt work, then two packs. If two packs dont work, then three packs!
Su Luo knew that the thing in the paper bag was the powder that Gu Ying had sprinkled on his face. It would make people lose their guard and answer whatever others asked.
Seeing that the woman wanted to give him all three bags, he panicked.
Dont, 1 surrender!
Su Luos surrender made Nio Ruyue stop sprinkling powder.
Gu Ying asked the soldiers at the door to find the general.
If you had said so earlier, there would be no such thing.
Someone, help this Prince of the Northern Kingdom change into a clean set of clothes.
Gu Ying pulled MO Ruyue out of the tent and gave instructions to the soldiers. It was not that he was kind, but that the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom could not die of illness for the time being.
He was the main bargaining chip between Xi Liang and the Northern Kingdom.
This time, the war will definitely end soon, and we can go home.
However, Gu Ying was still brooding over the matter of the Crown Prince of the enemy country calling MO Ruyue his imperial mother.
Not long after, the general strode over.
When the general saw Su Luos face, he was also stunned.
Why did he look so familiar? He seemed to look a little like someone he knew.
At first, he couldnt remember who she looked like, but it was only when he saw MO Ruyue that he suddenly understood.
This?
General, lets talk about business first. This Prince of the Northern Kingdom said that he surrendered.
Gu Ying stood in front of MO Ruyue, blocking the generals line of sight.
This is indeed a big deal.
Therefore, the general and Gu Ying talked to Su Luo for a long time in the tent. Su Luo indeed said that he had surrendered.
They also wanted to sign the treaty between the Nortnd and Xi Liang, and request Xi Liang to trade with the Nortnd and transport more food to the Nortnd.
Most of the Northern Country was like the Snow World Vige here, suffering from hunger and cold all year round. Therefore, more than half of the people in the Northern Country did not have enough to eat all year round.
This was also why after the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom started the war, he had been fighting with Xi Liang on a small scale. There had been no real fighting. It was also why Xi Liang had been fighting with the Northern Kingdom for nine months and had not made up its mind to fight. Every time Xi Liang wanted to fight with the Northern Kingdom, the Northern Kingdom would retreat.
The Nortnd was also mostly covered in mountains. The icy mountains were difficult to attack and easy to defend. Otherwise, based on Gu Yings personality, he would have suggested attacking the Nortnd. Perhaps the war would have ended long ago.
It was because of their cowardly character that they had dragged it out until now. As soon as he returned, they came over to steal and did not kill anyone.
Seeing that I havent fought with you for nine months, my request isnt too much. In fact, theres no way to start a war. I just want my people to have food
to eat.
Su Luo had already changed into dry clothes and was no longer tied up.
It was the rule of all armies not to treat captives and hostages harshly.
Until the war between the two countries stopped, Sullo was able to move freely in the tent. However, outside the tent, there were threeyers of guards on the left and threeyers on the right.
You can, but Im just a little curious. Why did you call my countrys Princess Ming Yue Mother when you saw her? Do you have anything to exin?
Gu Ying did not intend to hide this matter from the Great General. He could not hide it even if he wanted to. After all, he had eyes to see. This person looked too much like his Ruyue. He would not be able to sleep or eat in peace if he did not figure it out.
The Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom let go the moment he saw Ruyue. Who knew what he was up to?
As for the suspicion that her Ruyue was the princess of the Northern Kingdom, it was just a thought. Gu Ying probably did not believe it. After all, his Ruyue had a biological father in the MO Family Vige.
It was not as if there were no two people who looked alike in this world. He had seen them before. It might just be a coincidence. The Prince of the Northern Kingdom might have mistaken them for the wrong person and used this matter to negotiate peace.
She is just very simr to my imperial mother. Actually, I dont know her.
l only called her mother because I was cold, hungry, and drugged by you. I didnte back to my senses and called out. Besides, my mother isnt that young.
This is just a misunderstanding.
Gu Ying and the great general did not miss any of the expressions on Su Luffs face. Seeing that he was not lying or panicking, they believed him a little.
However, the two of them didnt ask him about this anymore. It was obvious that Su Luo didnt want to say anything. If he didnt want to say anything, he couldnt even use truth powder, let alone now.
The most important thing now was the war.
The general and Gu Ying went to draft the contract. It was the Nortnd who surrendered first. No matter what, the Nortnd had to cede territory and paypensation. The contract had to be drafted properly.
However, they still had to send a messenger pigeon back to the capital to tell the Emperor about this matter. The emperor had the final say in the details. They were only suggesting based on their positions, but this matter was most likely resolved just like that.
The day passed quickly, and night fell again.
Yuan Yuan, who was being guarded, could not sit still. Although she did not go out much the whole day, she could hear the conversation of the soldiers outside.
When she found out that Young Master Su had been captured, she still med herself for being implicated by her.
No, I have to think of a way to save Young Master Su.
Yuan Yuan was thinking about how she could get out and how she could let Young Master Su go.
At present, no one could help her. The only person who could help her, Yu Fei, was also locked up and had not been released until now. However, Young Master Su must be saved.
What should I do? What should I do?
Yuan Yuan was in a hurry to think of a solution. Suddenly, her eyes lit up. She knew who she could ask for help.
Ever since MO Ruyue saw Su Luo, she had a strange feeling.
In her memory, she was indeed born in the MO family vige. MO Shuisheng also treated her as his daughter, but he did not dote on her. From his behavior, they should be father and daughter. Otherwise, ording to MO Shuishengs personality, he would have sold her for a good price and entered the Gon Courtyard.
Princess, that Yuan Yuan is acting up again. She said that her stomach hurts.
The kind that hurts so much that shes dying.
After that, Doctor Wang came out and went to look for the Prince Consort with an ugly expression.
Chun Hua then reported the news she had just heard to MO Ruyue.
She really wont die if she doesnt court death. I want to see how shell y herself to death this time.
MO Ruyue was not worried at all that Yuan Yuan would let the Crown Prince of the Nortnd go.
Princess, do you want Wei Yi to keep an eye on her?
MO Ruyue felt that Chun Hua was rubbing her hands together and wanted to fight personally.
Theres no need. Its a waste of our time and energy. There are so many people in the camp, and if we let the daughter of a criminal get her way, then the general of Xi Liang can bring his head to the Emperor.
Well eat and drink well. Well just sit on a stool and watch the show.
Chun Hua didnt expect her Princess to say such terrifying words, but thinking about it, what her Princess said made sense.
Since the Princess had already said so, there was no need for her to keep an eye on it. She could only watch from the side..
Chapter 572 - 572: Each Taking What They Need
Chapter 572 - 572: Each Taking What They Need
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
On the other hand, Doctor Wang looked for Gu Ying with a solemn expression and told him about the medicine that Yuan Yuan had asked him to find for her.
He was a doctor. Of course, he knew what kind of medicine Yuan Yuan wanted. He knew what kind of effect it would have when she mixed them together. She was obviously trying to do something by asking him for those medicines at this time.
He had gone out for half a day yesterday. When he came back, he was sent by the general to guard him. Then, General Xue led his men out to capture the Prince of the Northern Kingdom.
Now that Yuan Yuan hade to find him, it was obvious that he could connect those things together. She wanted to use him to save the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom.
He really didnt know his ce!
But he would never underestimate anyone. In the military camp, even if it was the daughter of a criminal, as long as she was willing, she might be able to do whatever she wanted.
He didnt want to be a sinner. It wasnt easy for him to defend until now, and victory was right in front of him. When he returned to the capital, he could have any wife he wanted.
Did he really think that she was a fairy? Did he look that stupid? Would he risk his life for a woman who only thought about another man?
Doctor Wang was even angrier because he realized this. It turned out that he was just a chess piece in her eyes, and a stupid chess piece at that!
Then he would let Yuan Yuan see if he was stupid or not!
Send those things to him ording to what he said. I want to see what she wants to do.
Gu Ying thought about it for a moment and did not stop him. He asked Doctor
Wang to give him what Yuan Yuan said. He not only wanted to see how Yuan Yuan was courting death, but he also wanted to see if the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom was sincere in making peace with them.
If not, they could not be med for being ruthless.
Princess, Princess, the Prince Consort actually let Doctor Wang do as Yuan
Yuan requested.
Chun Hua received new news.
l know that Gu Ying must have his own considerations. We just have to watch from the side and not ruin any of their ns.
Oh right, go further away when youre watching the show.
Alright, Princess, this servant will go and see what they n to do next. Chun Hua stayed with MO Ruyue in the military camp. Other than cooking and washing clothes, she had nothing else to do.
Most importantly, MO Ruyue would not allow her to wait on her after she was done with the chores, which made her even more bored.
After Chun Hua left, Gu Ying came to look for MO Ruyue.
Gu Ying was already in the shower. Doctor Wang went to take a shower, but because he was talking, he didnt care about his hair. At this moment, water droplets were still dripping from his hair.
Didnt you steam my hair dry? Why didnt you steam your own?
MO Ruyue went to fetch a piece of dry cotton cloth and helped Gu Ying wipe the water droplets off his hair.
I dont have time to see you.
Im sorry for making you suffer with me here.
Gu Ying looked at MO Ruyue, who had be thinner and thinner ever since she came here, and his heart ached.
However, he knew that MO Ruyue would not agree to let her go back, so he did not say anything else.
MO Ruyue did not expose Gu Yings thoughts. He deliberately did not dry his hair because he wanted her to help him dry it.
As the saying goes, husband and wife are one. Although we havent be a real husband and wife, youre already my husband in my heart. Of course, wherever you are, Ill be there.
MO Ruyue looked at Gu Yings full beard. He hadnt shaved for a long time, which showed how busy he was, so she went along with him this time.
As soon as MO Ruyue said this, Gu Ying grabbed her hand that was drying his hair.
Gu Ying did not expect that he was already MO Ruyues husband.
He had always said that he wanted to do something, but he had never done his best. However, his Ruyue had never despised him.
How could he have such a wife?
She was smart, kind, capable, and beautiful. She was the most dazzling one
wherever she went.
However, such an outstanding woman was his wife.
Ruyue, thank you.
Why are you thanking me? Are you trying to draw a line between us?
MO Ruyue didnt like to thank people close to her. It felt like she wasnt even close anymore.
Alright, I wont say anything.
How long are you going to let Yuan Yuan y with herself?
MO Ruyue recalled that Gu Yings purpose foring over was probably to tell her about Yuan Yuan.
Lets not talk about this killjoy. Lets talk about ourselves.
It was rare for Gu Ying to be alone with MO Ruyue at this moment, so he did not want to talk about a third person other than the two of them.
Our own business is to quickly end this and then go home to finish what we havent finished.
MO Ruyue knew what the student wanted to hear, so she wasnt shy and directly told him about the pressing matter between them.
As she spoke, she realized that Gu Yings eyes had be burning and his breathing had be heavy. The unfinished business.
Yes.
Gu Ying mustered up his courage to kiss the person in front of him, but he was afraid of scaring her. However, the person in front of him bent down and did what he wanted to do. For a moment, he almost could not breathe.
The two of them stayed in the tent, waiting for the flowers to bloom. Gu Ying forced himself to stop and helped MO Ruyue tidy up her messy hair.
Its not suitable here. I want to stay until our wedding night.
He didnt want to spread any bad news about MO Ruyue before the wedding.
MO Ruyue understood what Gu Ying meant. She blushed and red at him.
He made it sound like she was in a hurry.
Right, let me tell you something. I left the military camp and stayed in the Snow World Vige for six days. I taught them how to grow bean sprouts and dig winter bamboo shoots, but they still couldnt eat their fill.
l also found that there are many herbs on the mountain during winter. Those herbs are considered scarce even if we dont have them in the south.
So, can you expand the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency here? When the timees, it will be easier for us to trade. That way, everyone can get what they need.
There are a lot of wood that can be used to make charcoal in the mountains near the Snow World Vige. Its a waste to not use those trees when they fall.
Its better to let them make charcoal and sell them.
Ive been living in poverty all this time, and its not just Snow World Vige. There are many other viges that are in the same situation, but they all have their own specialties that can be traded for food.
l need your escort team.
Sure, lets discuss this.
Gu Ying did not disagree with MO Ruyues request. Besides, what she mentioned was a good thing for the country and the people.
MO Ruyue took out a pen and paper and drew a picture of the surrounding mountains and terrains. Then, she and Gu Ying studied it.
After the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency arrived, where was their designated location? The most cost-effective route was marked out, and the local specialties of each vige and the nearby poor areas were also marked out.
The two of them talked about this matter in the house for an entire day.
MO Ruyue racked her brains to think of a way to help those people live a better life.
The weather here was too cold. It was too difficult for them to nt a greenhouse. It was impossible.
The northern viges had a warm spring season for half a year. During this half a year, thend could be put to good use..
Chapter 573 - 573: Don’t Pull Me If You Want to Die
Chapter 573 - 573: Dont Pull Me If You Want to Die
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
In winter, he could let them dig the cer to store a lot of vegetables.
MO Ruyue had already thought of a way to preserve the vegetables for them. Every year, they would store the ashes that were burned every day and every hour. When the time came, they would scatter the ashes on the vegetables. They would not only keep the vegetables fresh, but they would also be able to lock in water and not spoil them. They would have no problem eating them all winter.
The two of them tried their best to think of a way to make the lives of these vigers better, even if it was just a little bit.
Many of these viges were military households, so they should improve their quality of life to better help Xi Liang defend the border.
In the afternoon, Chun Hua handed a thick letter to MO Ruyue.
Princess, this letter is from West River Vige.
MO Ruyue immediately smiled and quickly took the letter.
She could feel the thickness and weight of the letter in her hand. It was obvious that there were quite a few letters inside.
Gu Ying moved closer to the two of them and carefully opened the letter,reading it carefully one by one.
There were more than ten pieces of paper, half of which were written by the children.
Each letter had the same sentence on it, asking them when they were going back.
On the other side, Yuan Yuan received the medicine that Doctor Wang had given her. She took out a few of them ording to her memory and mixed them up. Four hourster, afortable smile appeared on her face.
l can save Young Master Su at night.
It wasnt the first time she had met Young Master Su. It could be said that the two of them had known each other for more than half a year. Of course, she knew who Young Master Su was. He was the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom.
As long as she helped him escape from the camp, she believed that with Young Master Su e s character, he would definitely save her in the future. At that time, she would be the Crown Princess of the Northern Kingdom.
Yuan Yuan couldnt suppress the smile on her face as she thought about the beautiful things. Now, she could only wait until midnight before she could take action.
Yuan Yuan didnt care about the leftovers that the soldiers had given her that night. She picked up what she could eat and ate it with all her might. She still had to do something big at night, so she couldnt do without strength.
When the sky descended, Yuan Yuan began to deliberately scatter some medicinal powder around her tent.
In the second half of the night, she saw that the guards guarding her had all fallen to the ground.
Yuan Yuan was very excited. She was indeed a genius in medicine making. Even Princess Ming Yue was nothing in front of her.
She was fully focused on avoiding the patrol team and sessfully arrived at the tent where Young Master Su was imprisoned.
After waiting for a while, it was finally time for them to change shifts.
At this moment, Yuan Yuan sprinkled some powder on the two guards in the most hidden corner. The two guards quickly fell down. This medicine was much stronger than the previous ones, so the effect of the medicine came quickly.
Su Luo was already asleep on the bed. Suddenly, he felt as if someone had entered the tent in his sleep. Su Luo opened his eyes and saw a short figure walking toward him in the darkness.
Su Luo pretended not to notice her. He wanted to see what this person was doing. Seeing this persons figure, Su Luo felt a little familiar. This person should be Yuan Yuan. who had been going out to see him before.
She had actually managed to sneak into his strictly guarded tent in the middle of the night. Su Luo had a feeling that there was something fishy about this woman.
Young Master Su, Young Master Su, wake up.
Yuan Yuan quietly walked to the bedside and softly called out to the sleeping Young Master Su.
Before Young Master Su could speak to her, Yuan Yuan had already touched him. She even ced her hand on his face and gently stroked it.
Su Luo had goosebumps. He quickly opened his eyes and waved his hand away.
Young Master Su, its great that youre awake. Get up quickly, Ill let you out. When Su Luo heard Yuan Yuans words, he looked at her as if she was a fool.
If it wasnt for her stupidity, she wouldnt have been caught, and she wouldnt have surrendered as a hostage.
How could someone who would even betray his own country be worthy of others trust?
Besides, he had used her before.
Now that Xi Liang had finally agreed to sign the agreement, if he left, wouldnt everything he had done before be in vain? That was an agreement that he had worked so hard to obtain.
Youngdy, you should go back. I wont leave.
Young Master Su, dont be afraid. Ive made all the preparations. Ill definitely be able to sessfully save you.
Dont worry about me. Ill go with you.
As Yuan Yuan finished speaking, her voice became as soft as a mosquitos, and she was very shy.
As a girl, it was really embarrassing to say that she wanted to leave with the man she liked in front of him.
l wont leave. Youngdy, youd better hurry back.
Take advantage of the fact that no one has discovered you yet.
Su Luo said as hey down again.
The meaning is very obvious. This prince doesnt want to talk to you. This prince wants to rest, so you should quickly withdraw.
However, Yuan Yuan, who was deeply in love, understood that Su Luo was thinking for her and didnt want to implicate her.
Young Master Su had already fallen into such a situation, but he was still thinking for her. She really admired him!
Young Master Su, dont worry about me. Ive already prepared everything. Ive made a lot of medicine. As long as we meet someone, theyll be knocked out.
As long as we get out of this camp, well go to the camp in the Nortnd. As long as we reach the camp in the Nortnd, well be safe!
Su Luo didnt expect this person to be so naive that she couldnt be helped. It made sense. Otherwise, how could she have been deceived by him with just a few words?
Miss, we dont know each other. 1 advise you to hurry back and leave this ce.
Young Master Su, I wont walk. I want to be with you even if I die.
Yuan Yuan was very touched to see Young Master Su thinking so much for her. She would definitely follow him to the death.
l wont stop you if you want to die, but I dont want to die.
Su Luo couldnt help but say what was in his heart.
Yuan Yuan did not expect Young Master Su to say such a thing. She even dug her ears in disbelief, thinking that she had heard wrongly.
Young Master Su had always been gentle and refined. Didnt he see her as his confidante?
Didnt it feel like three years had passed since theyst saw each other?
Why would her Young Master Su say such words to her?
Young Master Su, did I hear wrongly just now?
l said, if you want to die, dont pull me along. I still want to live.
Su Luo felt that this woman could only tell her the truth. She was too stupid.
Young Master Su, are you joking with me?
Are you lying to me? Do you just want me to leave and not put me in danger?
Youre saying this for my sake, right?
The more Yuan Yuan spoke, the more she felt that this was the possibility. Young Master Su loved her!
You didnt hear me wrong, but youre wrong. I dont like you. I used to get close to you because I wanted to use you. Now that Im done using you, please leave my tent, or Ill call for help.
When Yuan Yuan heard Su Luo say such hurtful words again, she shook her head and staggered three steps back.
Young Master Su, you lied to me, right?
You lied to me! You love me, you love me.. Ive done so much for you, how could you lie to me?
Chapter 574 - 574: A Dog Can’t Change
Chapter 574 - 574: A Dog Cant Change
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Men, someone here wants to release me, a hostage from the Nortnd!
Su Luo didnt want to talk to this crazy woman at all. He directly shouted, and suddenly, a few people came in. At the same time, a torch was lit in the tent. Yuan Yuans heart almost stopped beating when she saw the person who came in.
My daughter, Yuan Yuan, hasmitted treason.
Take her away!
The first person toe in was the military advisor who had been locked up.
The military advisor had beenpletely deceived by Yuan Yuan. His brain was really only slightly resourceful when it came to war. He was a retard when it came to other matters.
The general and Gu Ying had just realized that this was what a military advisor was like.
They told the military advisor that Yuan Yuan was a traitor, but he didnt believe them. That was why he let Yuan Yuan act out and direct the whole thing so that the military advisor could see clearly. The military advisor naturally saw Yuan Yuans character. The first thing he said when he came in was to immediately sentence her to behead in public, but he himself had no right to do so.
He had done so many things that vited military discipline for this woman, but he had always been a clown in her hands. How could he ept such a truth?!
Moreover, he could no longer be a military advisor from now on. His future was ruined in the hands of this woman, so he wanted to take advantage of hisst chance to end this woman directly to relieve the hatred in his heart.
No, its not like that. Its not like that.
Im going to be the Crown Princess of the Northern Kingdom. You cant kill me, you cant kill me
The military advisor could no longer be called a military advisor. Before Yu Fei left, he took a deep look at the Prince of the Northern Kingdom.
That pretty boy was indeed prettier than him.
It was only after taking such a close look that he could tell that this person looked 50 to 60% simr to Princess Ming Yue!
Does the Great General know about this?
Did Gu Ying know?
Yu Fei felt that he might still have a chance to return to the military camp, or even redeem himself with meritorious service.
He went to the Great Generals tent overnight and told him about this matter.
The generals eyes shed as he looked at Yu Fei.
Yu Fei used his identity as a military counselor to act recklessly and almost made a big mistake. He can be exempted from death, but he cant escape punishment.
The general sighed and waved his hand. Two soldiers gagged Yu Fei and took him away.
Originally, he had wanted to let him off on ount of working together for so many years and his father being an old friend. In the end, he was stubborn. After the war here stopped, he could only be escorted into the capital and handed over to the Supreme Court to manage. It could also be considered an exnation for Lord Yu.
Lying down, he thought of what Yu Fei had said. He couldnt fall asleep again, so he got up and asked someone to write a memorial.
The Great General felt that he should inform the Emperor about MO Ruyues resemnce to the Northern Kingdoms Crown Prince as soon as possible. It would be bad if the Emperor found out about it from someone else.
This time, the main credit for capturing the Northern Kingdoms Crown Prince belonged to Princess Ming Yue.
Princess Ming Yue had helped him save so many soldiers and even sent
100,000 cotton coats to the camp. Although it was a fee, it was a loss. It was all because of Princess Ming Yues love. If it was any other princess, they would not be able to do this. He could not go against his conscience.
After a day and a night of thinking, the Great General remembered that Princess Ming Yue was also very simr to an old person he knew.
The war had been very tense previously, so he had not thought of this at all. It was only when he saw the Prince of the Northern Kingdom that he remembered that person again.
Speaking of which, the Northern Kingdom Crown Prince and Princess Ming Yue were both very simr to that person.
He wouldnt let anything happen to Princess Ming Yue for the sake of that person.
The Great General wrote a thick memorial at dawn and called for the letter soldiers.
Great General!
Send this letter back to the capital as soon as possible and present it to the emperor personally.
Yes. sir!
MO Ruyue woke up early in the morning and finished her breakfast before rushing to the execution ground. She wanted to see how the traitors were executed.
Princess, you just had breakfast.
When Chun Hua thought about what her princess was going to watch, she felt a little vexed.
Aiya, youre right. Wait for me in the tent. Ill tell you whats going on when Ie back.
MO Ruyue turned around and left after saying that. Chun Hua still jogged after her.
Princess, please wait for this servant. Princess, please wait for this servant!
MO Yu was being supported by Wei Er.
Brother Yu, can you hold on? Why dont I carry you?
Thats fine. Ill have to trouble second brother.
MO Ruyue had just left the tent when she saw Wei Er carrying Cuttlefish out. MO Yu quickly patted Wei Er r s shoulder, signaling him to put him down. He wanted to greet the princess.
Alright, alright. You guys are also going to watch the execution of the traitor, right? Lets go together.
Wei Er swiftly carried MO Yu on his back and followed MO Ruyue to the execution ground. Along the way, the line behind them grew longer and longer.
When MO Ruyue and the others arrived at the execution ground, it was already crowded with people.
The children of sinners cant change!
Thats right. In the military camp, our Lord Yu treated her so well. She really doesnt know whats good for her!
Thats right!
If it wasnt for Princess Ming Yue discovering that something was wrong with her, she might have seeded!
Throw her!
Following the order, a snowball covered in mud was thrown at Yuan Yuan, who was fixed on the execution ground.
Then, the second and third snowballs flew towards Yuan Yuan from all directions. Soon, only her upper body was exposed.
The executioner quickly stopped those people.
This hasnt been carried out yet. You cant bury her. A person like this doesnt deserve to be buried. Shell be exposed to the wilderness and eaten by wolves
and tigers.
Right, right, right. Everyone, stop quickly.
Yuan Yuan was trembling from the mud and snowballs. The cold stimtion made her unable to understand why she had chosen to walk the path to death again. Even when the executioner raised his knife and fell, she still could not understand thest moment of her consciousness.
The two armies of the Xi Liang Kingdom and the Northern Kingdom were in a state of truce, They were only waiting for the monarchs of both sides toe to an agreement before making their next move. MO Ruyue returned to the Snow World Vige, and Gu Ying also followed them.
When MO Ruyue left suddenly, the vigers of Snow World Vige did not know why, especially the old vige chiefs family. They had gone out to sell bean sprouts, and when they returned, they found that their benefactor had disappeared. They thought that they and the old woman had done something wrong and angered the benefactor, so they were always on tenterhooks.
Seeing MO Ruyue return, the vigers all smiled. Their vige had earned a lot of money from MO Ruyues bean sprouts. For the past few days, everyone could eat two full meals a day.
Gu Ying had to go on a field trip to find out where the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency should be stationed.
MO Ruyue still chose to stay in the old vige chiefs house because the old vige chief had always kept that room for her.
Youre finally back!
Ah, I had something urgent to do before, so I left in a hurry and didnt tell you. By the way, how are the bean sprouts selling?
MO Ruyue could tell that the vigers sincerely weed her, especially the old vige chief and his wife. They looked at her as if they had seen their long-lost daughter.
Its all because of you that our lives in the Snow World Vige have be much better. Every household can now eat two full meals.
Also, let this old man talk to you. This old woman will go and make lunch for the noble.
The vige chiefs wife said and went to the kitchen. MO Ruyue gave Chun Hua a look, indicating for her to help.
Chun Hua epted the order and entered the kitchen..
Chapter 575 - 575: The Function of Pine Nuts
Chapter 575 - 575: The Function of Pine Nuts
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When they came, they had hunted a few more animals from the mountain. Because Gu Ying hade with them, Gu Yings guards and Wei Yi had alsoe, while Wei Er was taking care of Nio Yu in the camp. The few of them went to the mountain to hunt a lot of prey, so there was meat to eat in the Snow World Vige today.
The next day, MO Ruyue went up the mountain again. As it had been sunny for the past few days, the snow on the treetops on the mountain had dropped a lot. MO Ruyue noticed that the trees were mostly pine trees. When she saw the pine trees, she had a sh of inspiration!
There were pine nuts in the pine cone of the pine tree every year. Wasnt this anotherrge sum of ie?
Pine nuts were very nutritious. It was suitable for both children and the elderly to eat some.
This thing was very rare in the south, and it could be sold for a high price.
Therefore, MO Ruyue returned to the vige and asked the old vige chief,
Do you harvest pine nuts every year?
Yes, yes, yes. Ill go get it for you now.
The old vige chief thought that MO Ruyue liked pine nuts, so he prepared to give her all the pine nuts in his house.
MO Ruyue saw that the pine nuts were big and plump. They were of good quality and were basically top-grade.
Aiya, you guys are really guarding a treasure mountain, but you dont know that theres a treasure in the mountain!
Chun Hua took this and stir-fried it as melon seeds, stir-frying it with the original vor and five spices.
As for the five spices, MO Ruyue wasnt afraid of running out of them. They had brought a lot of herbs with them, so they wouldnt be short of them.
Although Chun Hua was not the head chef at home, she still knew how to fry melon seeds.
Jiayaos cooking skills were the best, and they were only slightly inferior. Especially as the maids of Princess Ming Yue, each of the four maids had to be proficient in serving tea and rice.
Usually, when they were at home, they didntpete with Yao for work, and they had to do other things. But when they were out, Chun Hua had to do everything by herself.
Soon, the spiced pine nuts were out of the pot.
Come, everyone, try it.
Vige Chief, how do you usually eat pine nuts?
When Chun Hua brought out the five-spice pine nuts, the old vige chief had already smelled the fragrance. He couldnt help but want to grab a handful and squat at the door to bask in the sun.
We just casually stir-fried the food for a while, so how can it have such a good fragrance?
There were a lot of pine nuts on the mountain, so they couldnt be sold. Even if they were sold, they would be sold at a low price. They would sell three to five catties for a penny. Gradually, they wouldnt sell the big ones. It was better to keep them to fill their stomachs sometimes.
In the future, you guys should collect more every year. Ill take all of them at five coins per catty.
The old vige chiefs hand that was holding the pine nuts trembled, and he almost spilled all the pine nuts in his hand.
Madam, if you like it, Ill send it to you every year. You dont have to pay. The old vige chief waved his hands at MO Ruyue. They had already received so much kindness from the noble, how could they ask for money for pine nuts?
Five wens per catty? Then he wouldnt rob them. Hurry up and taste the five fragrances that Chun Hua stir-fried.
Gu Ying had already eaten a small pile of shells.
This thing has a lot of grease. As you said, it can fill your stomach, but thats not the main thing.
The main reason was that the pine nuts had medicinal effects. They could strengthen the spleen and relieve the bowels, nourish the yin and moisten the lungs, strengthen the brain, and even dy aging if eaten all year round. However, if you have a stomach ache, you should eat less. Its best not to eat.
It is beneficial for others to eat some every day.
Do pine nuts really have these effects?
Vige Chief took a bite. The pine nut was very fragrant when it entered his mouth, and it was even more fragrant with the five fragrances.
After listening to MO Ruyues exnation of the effects of pine nuts, he suddenly felt that the pine nuts that they had always regarded as worthless had be several times more valuable.
Of course. Help me collect as many as you can in the future. Ill take as many as you can in the viges.
Then can you sell the ones youve received?
The old vige chief was most worried that MO Ruyue would take it away and not smash it into her hands.
Of course. The people in the capital like to eat these things. Im just waiting for you to help me collect them.
Alright, alright. Leave this matter to this old man!
The old vige chief was really happy. They had another way to earn money.
His life would definitely get better and better in the future.
After MO Ruyue and the old vige chief finished discussing the matter of collecting pine nuts, Gu Ying and the old vige chief started talking about charcoal.
Gu Ying immediately made a deal with the vige chief. He had already talked to the general about this matter and made a treaty with the old vige chief. He also went to the government office to press his fingerprint and sign it, bing the residence guide of the relevant government.
With the estate token, they wouldnt have to worry about people checking that their Snowy World Vige didnt allow them to make charcoal.
The old vige chief held the manor guide in his arms like a treasure. This was the treasure of everyone in his vige. He had to take good care of it.
Its okay. The government office has a record.
Hey, I know. Thank you, sir. Thank you, sir. Thank you, madam!
Youre all good people!
Madam, please drink more chicken soup. This mushroom is the freshest mushroom on our mountain.
The mushrooms in this chicken mushroom stew were exchanged by the vige chiefs wife from another shop. There were a total of three types, and they tasted very delicious.
MO Ruyue nced at the mushroom that the vige chiefs wife had asked her to eat. Wasnt this hazel mushroom?
Nio Ruyue took the soup and ate it. It was indeed delicious, especially the soup. The essence of the chicken and mushrooms had all blended into the soup. It was so fresh.
No matter what species the mushrooms in the north were, even the mostmon ones were delicious.
Aunt, you can actually grow these mushrooms yourself
MO Ruyue immediately wrote down the method of nting fungi. Actually, the simplest way to nt fungi was to use a suitable wooden stake to maintain the temperature and humidity.
The old vige chief was literate, so he treasured the mushroom nting method that MO Ruyue had written. He would definitely encourage the entire vige to nt mushrooms on the mountain next spring.
Gu Ying initially thought that it was not worth it to set up the Xue Family
Bodyguard Agency here. However, for the sake of these border viges, he was willing to pay some money from other ces. After his Ruyue had thought of so many ideas, he felt that the bodyguard agency here might be the most profitable.
After all, it was very difficult to get arge amount of these specialties in the outside world. For someone like him who had set up a bodyguard agency to collect the freshest goods at the first moment, just this alone could make his bodyguard agency earn money.
After the discussion in Snow World Vige was done, Gu Ying prepared to go to a few other ces to take a look and choose the location of the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency.
MO Ruyue did not participate in these matters. At most, she would give some suggestions.
After spending ten days in the Snow World Vige, MO Ruyue tried her best to dig out the local specialties of the vige. There were a total of ten kinds of local specialties. MO Ruyue was even prepared to bring back some of the pine blossom stones that could be seen on the riverbank and other ces. They could be made into ornaments and earn a lot of money.
To MO Ruyue and the others, these stones were free, so they could take them back and try them out.
Gu Ying had also set the two designated locations for the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency. They were ready to return to the military camp.
The Emperors decree had almost arrived.
These were all urgent decrees and letters. Moreover, the two sides were now in a state of confrontation. They had to resolve it as soon as possible. Both countries were afraid that there would be changes if they dyed.
All the vigers of Snow World Vige stood at the entrance of the vige reluctantly, watching MO Ruyue and her group leave..
Chapter 576 - 576: The Empress Dowager’s Heartache for the Princess
Chapter 576 - 576: The Empress Dowagers Heartache for the Princess
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When MO Ruyue and Gu Ying left, they pulled two carriages of things. They were all pine nuts and mushrooms that the vigers had given to MO Ruyue, the kind that they would not charge a single cent.
Mo Ruyue couldnt resist the enthusiasm of the vigers and epted the pine nuts. Of course, before she left, she left five taels of silver in her room to buy the pine nuts.
In fact, the resources in the Snow World Vige were quite abundant, but no one had explored the true uses and benefits of the things here.
If they could make good use of all these things, the Snow World Vige would definitely be better.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying returned to the camp and found that not only had they returned with letters, but they had also brought back three envoys. The three of them were led by Hua Sanpin, and the other two ministers were assisting Hua Sanpin.
Because things could not be dyed, Hua Sanpin and the others had been rushing over day and night. Therefore, when these three spoiled ministers arrived, they werepletely paralyzed and were currently sleeping soundly in their tents.
Princess, since youve returned, Ill go and ask Lord Hua and the others toe and see you.
MO Ruyue was a little stunned by the Great Generals words. Since when did she have such a high status?
Get the envoy to see her?
They must be resting now. Theres no need to disturb them.
It was already dark, so it was impossible for him to negotiate with them at
Princess is right. Lets wait until they wake up.
MO Ruyue felt a little uneasy when the Great General suddenly acted so respectfully.
Lets talk after you wake up?
I dont need to participate in those things.
Seeing MO Ruyues expression, the Great General knew that she probably did not know what the Emperors decree had said.
The Emperor said that this time Princess Ming Yue has made a great contribution and let this lowly one discuss matters, Princess Ming Yue is also listening. If this lowly one has any problems, I hope Princess Ming Yue can give us some pointers.
Alright, so it turned out that it was her cheap brother who did this. Seriously, she did not want to participate in these things at all.
I dont know anything about state affairs. You guys can do as you see fit.
Princess, the Emperor said that since you look like the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom, it means that you are fated. Therefore, if you were present during this discussion, it might be easier. Was he really going to cling onto her?
Alright, Ill just listen to you guys talk.
Yes.
In that case, I wont disturb the Princesss rest.
After returning to the tent, MO Ruyueined to Gu Ying.
Do you think the Emperor is doing this on purpose? He doesnt want to give the credit to you and wants to give it to me?
Even if she had discovered that Yuan Yuan was in the wrong, Gu Ying was the one who had done it.
MO Ruyue felt that based on Gu Yings alertness, even if she didnt send someone to follow Yuan Yuan, he would definitely notice something fishy.
It could be said that she had gotten the credit before Gu Ying.
Wouldnt it be better if you get the credit?
In any case, you will be my wife in the future, The more powerful my wife is, the more glory I will have. Which man in the world can have such a blessing like me to have such a capable wife?
Nio Ruyue had nothing else to say to Gu Ying who was in high spirits.
When the two of them were about to have dinner, the dishes had not been served yet and Chun Hua was serving them. Wei Yi and Wei Er helped her lift the curtain. The general and his men arrived at this time.
Hua Sanpin and the other two followed behind the general.
This lowly official greets Princess Ming Yue!
No need for formalities.
MO Ruyue was holding a piece of meat with her chopsticks and was about to put it into her mouth when these people greeted her at the door. She had no choice but to put down her chopsticks.
The Princess is currently having her meal, so she wille backter.
The Great General said this without moving. MO Ruyue subconsciously asked, Have you eaten? If not, why dont you sit down and eat together?
This?
Then Ill do as you say!
Then, Hua Sanpin was the first to sit beside Gu Ying. Princess, you really have delicious food here!
This lowly official is thick- skinned.
The general saw that Hua Sanpin had already sat down, so he followed suit. The other two officials also sat down. They thought that since their superiors had already taken the lead, it would not be good for them to leave.
Nio Ruyue suspected that the Great General and Hua Sanpins purpose was to wait for dinner to start.
Fortunately, Chun Hua had always cooked a lot of food. Otherwise, she really wouldnt have dared to open her mouth to invite him.
Alright, were old friends. Dont stand on ceremony.
Hua Sanpin was a qualified official. MO Ruyue did not dislike him. On the contrary, she quite liked him.
When the others saw MO Ruyue pick up the piece of meat she had put down earlier, they followed suit and picked up their chopsticks to pick up the piece of meat they liked.
Wait!
Gu Ying suddenly raised his hand to stop him.
Everyones hands that were holding their chopsticks froze in the air as they looked at Gu Ying in confusion.
Everyone watched as Gu Ying picked up an empty bowl in front of him and quickly put some vegetables into it. MO Ruyue saw that the vegetables he had put into his bowl were all her favorite dishes. Seeing that the bowl was full of spikes, Gu Ying stopped only when he was about to drop any more. He then took another bowl and scooped a big bowl of soup.
Here.
Gu Ying pushed a bowl of dish and a bowl of soup in front of MO Ruyue.
l say, General Xue, youre too stingy. Even if we dont know whats good for us, we cant snatch the Princess food. Are you afraid that well finish all the food?
The general wanted to say the same thing to Gu Ying, but as an elder, he felt embarrassed.
On the other hand, because of his father, Hua Sanpin had always felt that he was of the same generation as MO Ruyue. He had only spoken because he had a good rtionship with Gu Ying, and Gu Ying had showered him with dog food the moment he arrived.
My Ruyue is kind and asked you politely, but youre too thick- skinned to sit down directly. I had to get food for my Ruyue, so theres nothing for her to
Gu Ying said as he struck first.
Seeing this, Hua Sanpin could not care less about bickering with Gu Ying and quickly attacked.
Seeing the two of them, the general also quickly picked up two pieces of meat. When the two small officials wanted to pick up the meat, they found that there was only broth left, so they had to move the other dishes.
After the meal, there was only a little bit left in the big bowl of food that Gu Ying had picked up for MO Ruyue, but Gu Ying had finished it all. There wasnt even any soup left on the te.
No wonder General Xue woulde to the Princess ce for a meal whenever he has time.
Princess, your maidservant is really good at cooking.
The Great General was very satisfied with the meal. He even wanted to kidnap Chun Hua home to cook for his family.
Thats right, this is the Empress Dowagers love for the Princess, so she personally picked her from the pce.
Gu Yings words immediately stopped Hua Sanpin, who wanted to snatch him away from the general. At the same time, it also dispelled the generals thoughts.
After the meal, he drank a pot of tea and began to talk about the uing negotiations with the Nortnd.
MO Ruyue only listened from the side and did not express her opinion. In fact, it was not a major matter. They just had to follow the process they had discussed previously..
Chapter 577 - 577: MO Ruyue’s Mother
Chapter 577 - 577: MO Ruyues Mother
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
In the tent next door, MO Yu, Wei Yi, Wei Er, and Chun Hua were also eating.
Im an injured person. Cant you give in to me?
Burp m You think youre injured?
If it werent for my fast speed, I wouldnt have been able to get my hands on the game! !
Wei didnt want to sell his face at all.
If he was polite at the dinner table, he would be a fool. He could not even eat his fill, so what else could he do?
As for Su Luo, who was in the tent opposite them, he kept smelling the fragrance of the food and eating the tasteless steamed buns and salted vegetables with tears streaming down his face. He was simply inhuman!
He had to stop the war as soon as possible. He wanted to go home. He had to eat for three days and three nights.
Therefore, the negotiations on the second day went very smoothly. Even if the envoys of the northern kingdom wanted to raise any conditions, they were all stopped by Su Luo with a look.
Among them, there was an envoy from the Northern Kingdom who repeatedly wanted to ignore Su Luffs gaze and act willfully. Su Luo firmly remembered that person and would definitely investigate him when she went back.
This person actually wanted to kill him. He wanted him to be tortured to death by the fragrance of the rice. He was really vicious!
That afternoon, Su Luo was sent back to the Nortnds military camp, and both armies retreated. At this point, the battle between Xi Liang and the Nortnd hade to an end.
Before leaving, Su Luo gave MO Ruyue a jade pendant.
Of course, MO Ruyue didnt want anything from a man other than Gu Ying. Moreover, it was in front of so many people. If she epted it, what would Guying do?
Princess Ming Yue, please ept it. I see you as before and you look very simr to my mother. However, my mother passed away many years ago. Since we are fated to meet, it must be fate. I see you like a younger sister so please ept it.
Su Luffs words were so clear. If MO Ruyue didnt ept this jade pendant, it would be as if she didnt want to be enemies with the two countries. She took the jade pendant and asked Chun Hua to help her keep it.
Dont lose Princess Ming Yues jade pendant.
In the future, if Princess Ming Yue has the time, you cane to my Nortnd to y. With this jade pendant, you can enter any part of my
Nortnd and eat and live for free.
Of course, this jade pendant can only have such an effect if you hold it yourself.
Okay, if you want to go y, you must go.
Goodbye!!
Nio Ruyue was just being polite. Of course, Su Luo could tell that MO Ruyue was just perfunctory.
My name is Su Luo. If Princess Ming Yuees to the Northern Kingdom, I will definitely wee you!
Goodbye!
Su Luo smiled gently at MO Ruyue and said confidently, You will definitelye and find me.
After saying that, Su Luo walked toward the soldiers of the Nortnd without looking back. His tall figure was extremely straight at this moment.
Gu Ying also returned to the capital.
When the army entered the capital, the people on both sides of the street cheered.
This time, MO Ruyue followed Gu Ying and the others into the capital. She could have returned to West River Vige earlier because she had also appeared during the negotiations with the Northern Kingdom. Even if she did not say anything, she would still have to go to report to the Emperor about the peace negotiations between the two countries.
After ten months, the capital had changed greatly.
Empress Lius family had colluded with the enemy tomit treason, and their entire family had been executed. The Liu family had been uprooted in the court.
The court reshuffle hade to an end.
As soon as MO Ruyue entered the pce with the army, the Empress Dowager and Empress Dowager sent people to pick her up.
When Empress Liu was deposed, Imperial Concubine Li was conferred the title of Empress.
The Empress Dowager and the Empress took MO Ruyue to the rear pce and ordered the pce maids to help MO Ruyue wash up and change her clothes.
After MO Ruyue finished washing up, she went to see the Empress and the
Empress Dowager. The two of them treated her as usual. The Empress Dowager even pulled her to sit on her left, while the Empress sat on her right.
Good child, its been hard on you.
The Empress Dowager and the Empress treated MO Ruyue sincerely. MO Ruyue could feel the motherly love from the Empress Dowager, so staying in the Inner Pce was the most rxing.
Its not that hard. Its just that its too cold there and theres no fruit and vegetables to eat.
Aijia heard that there is a snow covered in silver
MO Ruyue told them about the culture of the border and how she had helped Snow World Vige find food. The Empress Dowager and the Empress listened with great interest.
MO Ruyue said as she ate her snacks and drank some water. She was almost 80% full now.
The Empress and the Empress Dowager saw that MO Ruyue had said enough, so it was their turn to speak.
Ming Yue, have you ever thought that your parents in MO Family Vige are not your parents?
MO Ruyue coughed.
This was an oath that would not rest until it shocked the world!
My mother passed away when I was born. My stepmother is indeed not my biological mother, but my father should be,
MO Ruyue only knew the memories of her original body.
No, your father and mother might not be your parents, or Perhaps your mother is still alive.
The Empress did not know how to exin it to MO Ruyue. She had also remembered where she had seen the birthmark on MO Ruyues back before, but she could not recall it, so she drew it down. However, the Empress Dowager saw it.
The Empress Dowager also recognized the birthmark. The aunt and niece racked their brains, but the emperor saw it and said that the Empress
Dowager had a jade pendant with the birthmark on it. Only then did the Empress Dowager and Empress remember.
MO Ruyue was a little scared by the Empress Dowager and the Empress.
It cant be, right?
Looking at the Empress Dowager and the Empresss expressions of wanting to figure it out, she coughed to express her stance.
Cough. Even if Im really not MO Shuishengs daughter, it doesnt matter to me now.
If my biological parents are still alive, why didnt theye to find me? Since they dont want me anymore, I wont want them either.
When the Empress Dowager and the Empress heard MO Ruyues words, they recalled the days that MO Ruyue had spent in the MO Family Vige. The two of them could understand her words.
The two of them realized that MO Ruyue might not be the child of MO Shuishengs family in Nio Vige, so they specially investigated her life in Nio Vige and investigated everything that happened when she was born.
Back then, when her so-called mother gave birth to her, something really happened in their family.
It was a stormy night.
The vigers did not know exactly when MO Ruyue was born. They only knew that on the night MO Shuishengs eldest daughter was born, his wife died of a blood loss after giving birth.
This was also the reason why MO Shuisheng didnt do anything after he married his second wife, who treated MO Ruyue badly. Everyone in the vige knew that MO Shuisheng hated his daughter and that her birth caused the death of his first wife.
But in the eyes of the Empress and the Empress Dowager, this was a very big problem.
They found out that when MO Shuishengs wife was giving birth, a merchant group passed by their vige and stopped nearby for a night. Because a woman in the merchant group also gave birth that day, the merchant group only continued on their way the next morning.
She had just given birth for a day and did not stop. That womans identity was not simple. If it was not because she gave birth, she would not stop.
The Empress Dowager and the Empress had analyzed the situation for a long time. Both of them felt that MO Ruyues mother was in the caravan and had been forced to stay for various reasons.
But now, MO Shuishengs family, even his second wife, was dead. This matter was very difficult to investigate, but it was not without a ce to start. For example, the birthmark on MO Ruyues back was the main proof of her identity.
Ming Yue, I know you might not be able to ept it, but if your mother is still alive in this world, dont you want to see her? She had no choice but to leave you behind back then..
Chapter 578 - 578: I Want to Go Home and Get Married
Chapter 578 - 578: I Want to Go Home and Get Married
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Protect?
Do I have a very important identity?
Its not like Im a descendant of some royal family who has wandered outside. Whats there to hide
MO Ruyue paused and thought of the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom she had met at the border.
Now that she said it, she might really be rted to the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom.
Then do you know who my biological parents are?
Anyway, she didnt know.
The Empress Dowager and the Empress looked at each other and decided to tell Nio Ruyue what they knew.
When this widow was young, about twenty years ago, this widow was only a princess at that time and was in the courtyard to avoid the heat. That day, this widow wanted to eat fish so she secretly went to the pond outside the courtyard to fish. Who knew that it would suddenly rain. The rain was unexpected. One moment it was sunny, the next moment it was pouring.
The rain was especially heavy and thunder roared. In the panic, this widow identally fell into the pond. The maids around this widow did not know how to float, but they all jumped in to pull this widow ashore. In the end, they all drowned. This widow almost drowned and was finally saved by a merchant group passing by.
The person who saved this widow was a very beautiful woman.
Now that I think about it, you are 80 C 90% simr to that woman, but after so many years, this widow has forgotten about it.
After that benefactor saved this widow, she refused to stay and quickly left with the things that this widow gave her. However, this widowter picked up a jade pendant that the benefactor dropped by the pond.
She had kept the jade pendant with her family, hoping that she would meet her benefactor again one day to thank her.
The empress dowager gestured to the granny behind her. The granny went into the room and took out an exquisite brocade box.
The Empress Dowager personally took out the jade pendant from the brocade box.
Ming Yue, do you have such a birthmark on your back?
The Empress Dowager showed the back of the jade pendant to MO Ruyue. MO Ruyue looked at the back of the jade pendant and saw that there was indeed a pattern on it. It was a soaring eagle.
The carvings on the jade pendant were very vivid. Even the feathers of the eagle were lifelike.
Ah, it does look the same as the birthmark on the princess back!
Chun Hua stood behind MO Ruyue, and MO Ruyue could clearly see the totem on the jade pendant.
Isnt there a birthmark on my back? How could there be such a soaring eagle?
In fact, MO Ruyue had no idea what the birthmark on her back looked like. After all, she had never seen it before, and she couldnt turn her head to look at it.
If it wasnt for the assassination attempt in the pce, which was seen by the Imperial Concubine Li, she wouldnt even know that she had a birthmark on her back.
Looking at the eagle on the jade pendant, she felt that she should have some rtionship with the jade pendant. No matter how long the birthmark on her back was, it could not look like the eagle on the jade pendant.
If it was very coincidental, then it was not a coincidence. It was very likely the truth.
Sister, the birthmark on your back is indeed the same as the one on the jade pendant. When I was young, I liked this jade pendant very much. I often asked my aunt toe and y with it. My aunt would only let me see it and touch it, but she would never let me take it out to y with it. Its also because I like it very much that I have some memories. Thest time 1 saw the birthmark on your back, I felt that it was very familiar. Its just that it was a long time ago that I forgot where I saw it, so I couldnt remember it for a moment. Bring me two big mirrors. I want to see how simr they are.
The more they said that, the more curious MO Ruyue became about the birthmark on her back. She had never seen a birthmark that looked like this before.
She had also reached out to touch it, but she could not feel anything.
Hey, Princess, why does this jade pendant look so familiar? Do we have one?
Chun Hua looked at the jade pendant in the Empress Dowagers hand. The more she looked, the more familiar she felt.
It seems that not long ago, I seem to have taken this jade pendant?
Chun Hua frowned as she pondered. When had she ever seen such a jade pendant?
Go and take a look at the jade pendant that the Prince of the Northern Kingdom gave me.
After hearing Chunhuas words, MO Ruyue recalled the jade pendant that the Crown Prince of the Nortnd had given her.
Yes! This servant will go now.
At the same time as the tworge mirrors were brought over, Chun Hua also brought over the jade pendant given by the Crown Prince of the Northern
Kingdom. She ced the two jade pendants together andpared them. Indeed, they were exactly the same.
However, there was a slight difference when she looked closely. On the lower right corner of the eagle on the back of the jade pendant that Su Luo had given MO Ruyue, there was the word Luo engraved.
On the back of the jade pendant in the Empress Dowagers hand was the word Moon.
Ming Yue, where did you get this jade pendant from?
The Empress Dowager and the Empress were astonished to see the jade pendant in MO Ruyues hand.
The Crown Prince of the Nortnd gave it to me.
The Empress Dowager and the Empress could not help but ask her why the Northern Kingdoms Crown Prince had given her this jade pendant. MO Ruyue told them that she looked like the Northern Kingdoms Crown Prince and that the Northern Kingdoms Crown Prince had insisted on giving her the jade pendant when he left.
Child, do you really not want to know who your biological parents are?
The Empress Dowager and Empress were burning with anxiety. They wanted to go to the north to find her biological parents for her.
The Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom said that his mother passed away many years ago.
MO Ruyues words dispelled the Empress Dowager and the Empress thoughts.
Perhaps the Prince of the Northern Kingdom is your elder brother? The Empress Dowager was still unwilling to give up.
If it was really as they had guessed, MO Ruyue was the princess of the Northern Kingdom. She had led a wandering life for so many years. Just the thought of it made the Empress Dowager and the Empress heart ache.
Lets talk about thatter.
The Empress Dowager and the Empress saw MO Ruyue like this, so it was not appropriate for them to drag her to the Nortnds to look for her rtives.
The two of them also knew about the Emperor, the Great General, Gu Ying, and the others. They also knew that MO Ruyue looked simr to the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom.
Without waiting for the three of them toe up with a n, the Emperor called MO Ruyue over and gave her a generousmendation in front of all the civil and military officials of the Imperial Court.
After MO Ruyue was rewarded by the Emperor, she was anxious to go home.
The Empress Dowager and the Empress wanted to keep MO Ruyue for a while longer.
Mother, Sister, you dont want me to be not married yet, right? Im going home to get married.
MO Ruyue didnt feel awkward at all when she said that she wanted to go back and get married. She wasnt shy either. Instead, it made the Empress Dowager and the Empressugh out loud.
Yes, yes, yes. This is the fault of this widow and your sister. They actually stopped you from going back to get married. This is too outrageous, hahaha.
MO Ruyue had already said that she was going home to get married, so it would not be good to drag Gu Ying along. Besides, he was not the Great General, so the Great General could carry on with his funeral.
Previously, they had traveled for half a month, but they had only rested in the capital for one and a half days. When they returned, Gu Ying had asked MO Ruyue to take the carriage. They could rest in the carriage if they were not in a hurry.
The speed of the carriage was not that slow. They rested at the ry station at night.
In the carriage, MO Ruyue was thinking about the jade pendant. She told Gu
Ying what the Empress Dowager and the Empress had told her.
MO Ruyue felt that it was necessary to let him know about this matter. Besides, the Northern Kingdoms Crown Prince had given her a jade pendant at the border. Everyone would know about this sooner orter. It was better for her to tell Gu Ying as soon as possible. If something really happened, they would have a way to deal it.
After hearing this, Gu Ying also felt that MO Ruyue was definitely rted to the royal family of the Nortnd.
Then do you really not want to find your biological parents?
I can help you.
Lets not talk about that for now. Lets hurry back and get married first.
Well talk about the other things after we get married..
Chapter 579 - 579: A Welcoming Ceremony
Chapter 579 - 579: A Weing Ceremony
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Gu Ying was very touched. Their marriage had been full of twists and turns.
It had been almost a year, and they still hadnt gotten married.
Alright, Ill listen to you.
Gu Ying was silent for a while before asking MO Ruyue, If you were really the princess of the Northern Kingdom, would you go back?
Why should I go back? My home is here, why should I go back?
Nio Ruyue looked at Gu Ying, who was obviously a little nervous, and took the initiative to hold his big hand.
There were many thick calluses on his warm and dry palms, giving her a sense of security.
Dont worry, even if Im really the princess of the Northern Kingdom, Ill bring you guys with me when I go back. No matter where we go, our family must be together, no one can be missing.
Alright, Ill go wherever you go.
Gu Ying grabbed MO Yues hands.
A dayter, their carriage entered Lianshan County.
Gu Ying was surprised to find that the mountain between Lianshan County
and Kaoshan Town had been opened up. There were stalls on both sides of the road.
We should be able to reach home by following this road.
Yes.
After crossing the first mountain tunnel and crossing two streets, they entered the Mingyue Mountain Tunnel in Kaoshan Town. Once they exited the tunnel, they saw a wide road paved with green bricks. Both sides of the road were covered with inns. There were all kinds of shops selling everything.
Our house is so lively now.
Thats right. Youve been away for almost ten months. Its not surprising that youve changed so much.
Ah, the Princess is back!
The Princess is back!
Immediately, the entire street cheered, and even the waiters and shopkeepers in the shops ran out to wee them.
The smile on her face was full of surprise and sincerity. Gu Ying looked at it and the corners of his mouth curled up.
Youre so popr now. Of course, Im theirndlord. These houses are all mine.
MO Ruyue said proudly.
Oh, what about those houses? Who built them?
Gu Ying pointed to the houses behind the shops on both sides of the road and asked. At the same time, he had a guess in his heart.
Those are all mine.
As MO Ruyue spoke, she waved at the people who were greeting her.
Our Princess is back!
All of the peddlers and pedestrians on the street were waving their hands to send MO Ruyue off.
Its beautiful, but are you nning to sell so many houses?
Thats right. Otherwise, I wouldnt be able to live in so many houses alone. I want to make this ce the most prosperous Kaoshan Town.
Im afraid it wont be easy for you to sell them. Who are you going to sell so many to?
That house was built better than the houses in their vige. If it was sold to ordinary people, they probably wouldnt be able to afford it. Moreover, the vigers all had their own houses and were not willing to move here.
When we get married, these houses will definitely be sold out.
Oh right, lets go to Masters house and tell him.
MO Ruyue thought of her family background and decided to hold the wedding tomorrow.
That fast? Arent you going to wait two days?
He felt that the family still had to make more preparations. He wanted her to be the most beautiful and enviable bride.
No need to wait, no need to wait. Everything can only be discussed after we get married.
Nio Ruyue hurriedly interrupted Guying. She felt that if they waited any longer, they wouldnt have to get married.
Alright, Ill listen to you.
They returned to the Qin familys medical center.
Doctor Qin thought he had seen wrongly when he saw Mo Ruyue suddenly appear.
Master, Im back! Aiyo, its really Ruyue!
Its good that youre back!
MO Ruyue chatted with Doctor Qin for a while. Master, Gu Ying and I are getting married tomorrow. You cane to the wedding banquet.
Good, good, good!
What?
Haha, its time to get married!
The news of MO Ruyue and Gu Ying getting married the next day instantly spread throughout Reliance Town.
MO Ruyue and the others bade farewell and went home. They were already at their doorstep, so MO Ruyue and Gu Ying couldnt wait any longer. Doctor Qin didnt stay any longer.
After they left, County Magistrate Wu wiped the sweat off his forehead and appeared at the entrance of the Qin familys medical center. Doctor Qin said that they had returned to West River Vige. He was about to chase after them when Doctor Qin told him that MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were getting married tomorrow.
Dont chase after them now. They have to go home and kiss the children.
They dont have time for you.
If you go, youll only cause trouble.
Didnt you see that l, your master, didnt even have the cheek to follow you?
County Magistrate Wu immediately understood. Alright, Ille and find you tomorrow morning. Doctor Qin nodded.
MO Ruyues carriage entered the Mingyue Mountain Tunnel once again. After exiting the tunnel and entering the street, they saw West River Vige.
There were a few children ying at the entrance of the vige, and many dogs surrounded the children.
The few pure ck dogs in the lead heard the movement of the carriage and looked up. Their ears and noses twitched, and they suddenly ran towards the carriage.
Woof woof woof!
Woof woof woof!
The few dogs wagged their tails happily and ran toward the carriage. Two of the children suddenly stood up and ran towards the carriage.
When MO Ruyue and Gu Ying heard the barking of the dogs, they lifted the curtains in front of the carriage and looked at the dogs running over and the children behind them. Wei Yi, who was driving the carriage, stopped the horse without MO Ruyue and Gu Yings instructions.
Phew-
Uncle Wei Yi! Its Uncle Wei Yi! Mother is back!
Mother-
Mother-
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying alighted from the carriage.
Ah, its really Mother. Mother-
Tang Tang flew into MO Ruyues arms, followed by Si Bao, MO Ruyue was forced to take two steps back. Gu Ying quickly supported MO Ruyue from behind to slow down the two childrens momentum.
The dogs were also circling around MO Ruyue and the others. Their tails were wagging happily, and their eyes were filled with joy. Their mouths were wide open, and they looked like they were smiling.
Tang Tang and Si Bao have grown taller again. Why arent you in school today?
They were still in school at this time. As for the two children skipping ss, Nio Ruyue would believe Tang Tang, but if Si Bao skipped ss, MO Ruyue would never believe it unless there was apelling reason.
Mother, didnt you miss Tang Tang?
Its a holiday today!
Tang Tang pouted. She was unhappy that her mother had asked her about her studies the moment she came back.
Yes, Mother really did. Otherwise, she wouldnt have hurried through the night.
Lets go home and talk about the situation.
The Princess is back!
Auntie is back!
Theyre all back!
Uncle is back too!
After Gu Ying entered the vige, he realized that the vige had also changed greatly. Basically, the old houses in the past had be new houses with courtyards.
Aiyo, youre already back. Its just nice that were eating now. Are you hungry and tired from the journey?
After the meal, rest and recuperate today. You still have a busy day tomorrow!
The old vige chief had been waiting at the vige entrance to wee MO Ruyue and Gu Ying back. Now, he was so happy that he invited them to his house for dinner.
The vigers knew that they wereing back today because MO Ruyue had asked Wei Er toe back first to inform the vigers that they were ready. However, they did not expect that everyone in the vige knew about it.
No matter what, the old Vige Chief had to give MO Ruyue and Gu Ying a wee.
Moreover, every family in the vige would have a share of this meal. MO Ruyue and Gu Ying knew the inside story, so they no longer refused..
Chapter 580 - 580: Wedding
Chapter 580 - 580: Wedding
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The old vige chiefs wife and his daughter-inw worked together to cook this meal. Aunt Chen, Mrs. Chen, Mrs. Wang, and the others also helped. They each made their own specialty dishes and gathered together for a big feast.
Everyone was eating,ughing, and chatting at the table, but they still had to take care of MO Ruyue and Gu Yings tiredness. They were all very considerate, which made the two of them feel the warmth of home.
Thats right. The entire West River Vige gave them the feeling that it was their familys home.
After the meal, the old vige chief was very perceptive and told MO Ruyue and Gu Ying to go back and rest.
Wei Er has already told us when he came back. We also know that you are preparing to get married tomorrow. Leave the other matters to us. The main thing for the two of you to do now is to rest well so that you will be energetic tomorrow!
Yes, yes.
Dont worry about it. Leave the rest to us. We promise to do it beautifully for you.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying looked at the enthusiastic vigers and did not want to refuse.
All the arrangements for the wedding ten months ago had basically been made. All that was left was to greet the guests who woulde tomorrow.
Now, it was very fast for her vige to reach Reliance Town and Lianshan County. She could inform everyone by riding a horse.
Her master must have already informed her about the situation in Reliance Town and Lianshan County.
Gu Ying pointed out a few sr terms and rode to a few familiar families to inform them of his sincerity.
They were indeed quite tired. Aftering home, they werepletely rxed. After eating and drinking, they could not help but feel a little sleepy. Hence, Gu Ying returned to the Qin family to rest. MO Ruyue did not return to the princess manor either. Instead, she rested in the original courtyard of West River Vige. The princess manor had to prepare the wedding scene for tomorrow overnight, and she was afraid that it would be too noisy there.
When MO Ruyue woke up, it was already past midnight. Moreover, she was awakened by hunger.
This was the best sleep MO Ruyue had had in a long time.
Just as there was some movement, Chun Hua came over with antern.
Princess, are you going to the toilet?
Yes, 1 am.
What time is it now?
Its the third watch. Youll have to get up and prepare in a while.
After sleeping for the entire afternoon and night, she couldnt fall asleep for a while.
Then get up now and slowly clean up so that you dont have to be in a hurry.
Then this servant will bring you some food first.
After MO Ruyue finished her breakfast, Gu Ying had already gotten up and was ready.
Actually, he woke up around the same time as MO Ruyue. As today was their wedding day, he was rather excited. After waking up, he could not fall asleep again, so he simply got up.
When he saw that MO Ruyues courtyard had lit up, he wanted toe over, but Aunt Zhou stopped him. She said that it was best if they did not meet again before the wedding, or else it would be inauspicious.
Gu Ying had been suppressing himself from doing other things. Otherwise, he would always want to look for MO Ruyue.
As the sky gradually brightened, West River Vige became more and more lively. It was even livelier than the day of MO Ruyues wedding.
The entire vige, from the elderly to the infants, all woke up early to attend the wedding of their Princess Ming Yue and General Xue.
Yesterday, Gu Ying and MO Ruyue had gone to rest after lunch. The eunuch came to the vige to announce the imperial edict. The eunuch knew that the Princess and General Xue were resting and told them not to disturb them. Therefore, the vigers also learned that the victory in the border was all thanks to Princess Ming Yue and General Xue.
These two were the pride of the entire vige!
Nio Ruyue had already changed into her wedding dress and put on her phoenix crown. Behind the curtain on her forehead, her beautiful face was faintly discernible.
Although she wasnt the kind of person who was easily embarrassed, and this was still a lonely shadow marrying into the princesss manor, an inexplicable sense of nervousness still arose spontaneously, but most of it was joy and anticipation.
The atmosphere of this era was simr to that of the Tang Dynasty. Generally, when a man married into a womans family, the woman would also have to cover her head with a red veil. As for MO Ruyue, because she was a princess, she only wore a phoenix crown to cover her face.
Before the auspicious time arrived, the pce sent arge group of people.
The Empress Dowager and the head pce maid beside the Empress ran over to pay their respects to MO Ruyue and exined their purpose ofing. As there were still important matters to be dealt with in the court, the Emperor, the Empress, and the Empress Dowager could not attend the ceremony. They were very apologetic and specially approved the Ministry of Rites toe and preside over MO Ruyues wedding for them.
This was also the greatest honor that the Imperial Family had bestowed upon MO Ruyue. MO Ruyue certainly would not reject their good intentions.
The people who were originally prepared for the wedding were also very happy to change to those from the pce. Even if they did not want the red seal, as long as they could give the princess the most dignified wedding, everyone was extremely happy.
Atter getting MO Ruyues permission, all the people in the pce took their positions.
Nio Ruyue, apanied by ceremonial personnel and guards of honor, sat in arge tent that was specially prepared for the Princesss wedding. It represented the direction of the Imperial Pce.
Apanied by the male bridesman, the son-inw rode to the front of the tent and knelt down to receive the emperors marriage edict. He also presented the mans betrotrothal gift of wild geese and cloth.
The Prince Consort bowed to the princess and asked her to get on the carriage. The princess boarded the carriage under the service of the etiquette staff.
The Emperors son-inw personally boarded the carriage and rode on while holding the Princess whip. After the carriage wheels spun three times, the Emperors son-inw returned the whip to the coachman. The Prince Consort rode his horse and apanied the Princess to the princess manor for the wedding.
The carriage arrived in front of the princess manor. The Prince Consort dismounted and the Princess sat down on the carriage carried by eight people. The Prince Consort bowed again and invited the Princess into the wedding venue. The Prince Consort walked in front, and the Princess entered the wedding venue on her chariot.
With the apaniment of the band, the prince consort held the princess hand and entered the wedding venue. The etiquette staff threw millet and beans to show their blessings.
The Princess and the Prince Consort sat on both ends of the table, facing each other.
The female emcee washed the hands of the female guest of honor and the neer.
The newlyweds ate the same set of dishes and rice, indicating that the husband and wife were one family. There were three agenda items: sacrifice, nuptial cup, and prison.
Because both sides had no elders, they directly thanked the Emperor, Empress, and Empress Dowager in the capital.
Then, the Emperors son-inw and the Princess gave gifts to the ceremonial staff.
The wedding certificate was read out to all the guests.
After the ceremony, all the people will leave the hall.
All the staff went to the stage to watch the cultural programs. The organizers prepared pitch-pot, riddles, poetrypetitions, and other cultural activities.
Gu Ying escorted MO Ruyue into the bridal chamber. Wait here. Qing Er, Qingfei, and Qingshuang wille to apany you in a while. Ill go outside to entertain the guests.
Today, Mo Ruyue was too beautiful and dazzling. Gu Ying did not want anyone to look at her and wished he could hide her.
Oh, right. Dont forget to help me promote those houses to those people. MO Ruyue nodded.
The first ten buyers would receive a discount and a gift.
You should go and rmend him to Uncle Hua first. Theres also County Magistrate Wu. County Magistrate Wu is going to be promoted to a prefect this time. Its not right not to buy a house to celebrate.
?As long as there are two or three leaders, there should be no problemster. You should hurry up and go. You dont have to worry about me. Ill take care of myself. Theres still Xiao Qing and Qingfei.
Theres still me and my brother!
Tang Tang and Si Bao, who were dressed in bright red festive brocade robes and had their hair tied into two small buns, appeared. Gu Ying patted the heads of the two children.
Then take care of your mother for me. Im going out.
Si Bao and Tang Tang nodded vigorously..
Chapter 581 - 581: Together Forever
Chapter 581 - 581: Together Forever
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After Gu Ying left, Xue Qing, Qin Qingfei, and Qin Qingshuang came over to talk to MO Ruyue. MO Ruyue lifted the pendant on her forehead and hung it on the pearl hairpin behind her phoenix crown.
She saw that Xue Qing and Qin Qingfei did not bring their children along. Why didnt you bring your babies? I havent seen them for a long time and I miss them.
She was so tired aftering back yesterday that she didnt even have time to look at it.
Sister-inw, if you really like it, you should quickly have two with my brother!
Xue Qing winked at Qin Qingfei.
Thats right, Mother. You can give birth to our own younger brothers and sisters. We dont want our aunts. Whats the big deal? Mother will definitely give birth to many younger brothers and sisters for me and Brother.
Tang Tang and Si Bao had long heard from the vigers that if their mother were to give birth to a younger brother or sister, they would definitely be twins like her and her brother.
Then Ill work hard to give birth to a younger brother and sister for you.
Thats enough. Mother cant give birth to more.
Pui, pui, pui!
What nonsense are you talking about? Hurry up and start over.
When Qin Rouwan heard MO Ruyues inauspicious words, she wanted nothing more than to cover her mouth.
MO Ruyue had no choice but to rephrase,
If you want a younger brother or sister, Ill give birth.
Is this okay?
Seeing MO Ruyues troubled expression, they knew that they were making things difficult for her. After all, she was unwilling to get married beforest year and even said that she wouldnt have children even if she got married. It was already very good for her to say such words now.
The few of them chatted with MO Ruyue for quite a while. When they heard the sound of the banquet starting, MO Ruyue told them to go out and eat. They shouldnt starve because of her. Chun Hua would also send food over for herter.
In the end, Xue Qing and Qingfei brought Qin Qingshuang, Tang Tang, and Si Bao out, leaving Qin Rouwan to apany MO Ruyue.
Seeing that everyone else had left, Qin Rouwan took out a small booklet and stuffed it into MO Ruyues hands.
MO Ruyue lowered her head to take a look. There was no white paper on the cover of the booklet. What is this?
Which shops ount book?
You dont have to show me these things. Do you think I dont believe you? No, sister. You have to see this today.
You can take a look first while theres no one around. You can ask me if you dont understand.
MO Ruyue saw that Qin Rouwans expression was a little strange as she spoke, so she doubtfully flipped through the booklet.
In the end
Cough cough. Theres nothing to see here. Ive seen it too. You should take it back.
Youve seen it?
Oh. Yes, yes. Is there no harm in taking a look?
Qin Rouwan remembered that this wasnt her first time getting married, so
she tactfully didnt mention that persons name.
Princess.
Chun Hua brought a few maidservants in from outside. Each of them was holding a tray in their hands. On the tray, there was no food that did not look, smell, and taste delicious.
MO Ruyue hurriedly hid the booklet in her sleeve.
Since Big Sister isnt going out, then stay here and eat with me.
Alright.
Qin Rouwan looked at MO Ruyue and smiled. She didnt dare to tease her anymore, afraid that she would be too thin-skinned.
The wedding banquet continued. Some guests were still drinking outside. Gu Ying was rescued by Wang Tiezhu and the others before he returned to the bridal chamber.
It was already the hour of dawn.
Wifey, your husband is here,
They were finally getting married!
Qin Rouwan had already been persuaded by MO Ruyue to go back to rest, leaving Chun Hua alone in the room to apany MO Ruyue. When she saw Gu Ying enter, she tactfully retreated and closed the door behind her.
Have the guests left?
MO Ruyue saw that Gu Ying did not drink much and his eyes were still clear.
Those who are far away havent left, but those who are near have already left. However, Tiezhu and Dazhu have helped to entertain them, and the ce to stay has already been prepared.
Gu Ying walked closer to MO Ruyue, and his heart began to speed up uncontrobly.
Then, lets rest.
Alright, 1 have the same intention.
MO Ruyue felt that it was quite reasonable for her to say that the man was her husband.
They had already been instructed by the nanny that the candles at night could not be blown out. They had to burn them until dawn when they extinguished themselves.
Gu Ying and MO Ruyue pretended to be calm, but they were actually very flustered.
Although they were not young anymore, it was their first time.
As for people who wanted to make a scene in the bridal chamber, that was simply impossible. The couple had only gotten married after ten months and had contributed greatly to the country. At this moment, everyone hoped that they would quicklyplete this marriage.
Wifey, my clothes are all white. Ill help you undress. Take off this phoenix crown first.
By the way, are you hungry? Why dont 1 get you something to eat?
He knew that Chun Hua would definitely make her some food, but he was still a little worried about whether his wife was full or not.
Im not hungry. Ive eaten. Are you hungry?
Why dont you eat some more? Im not hungry either. Lets rest.
MO Ruyue nodded.
Gu Ying gently took off the phoenix crown for MO Ruyue.
Youre so beautiful today.
Youre also very handsome.
Gu Ying began to loosen MO Ruyues outer robe, but his hands did not live up to his expectations and tied the belt into a dead knot.
Im sorry.
Dont say sorry. This means that well be united forever from now on.
MO Ruyues wordsforted Gu Ying.
Theres no hurry. Lets take it slow.
MO Ruyues face reddened visibly upon hearing this, and Gu Yings heart became even more restless.
After a long time, he finally untied the knot and sessfully took off the outer cover. He hung it on the screen.
Suddenly, a white booklet fell out of his sleeve.
The page that fell to the ground happened to be opened. MO Ruyue saw it and wanted to pick it up, but Gu Ying was toote.
This is What?
MO Ruyue blushed and could not say anything.
Wifey, let me handle this.
Gu Ying remembered that it was MO Ruyues first time doing anything, so she definitely didnt know about those things. He didnt know either, but he had just read two pages and felt that he had opened up his conception and governor meridians.
In order to avoid his wifes embarrassment, he bravely stepped forward.
Because of the little book, Gu Ying also let go of his hands and feet. His wife was already very shy. If he was still shy, there would be no show tonight.
He quickly scattered the clothes on the floor and put down the bed curtain. The two of them spent the entire night ying in heaven. It was only when MO Ruyue fainted on the roller coaster that Gu Ying was annoyed that he did not know how to restrain himself. He felt sorry for MO Ruyue and transferred his inner energy to help her recover her strength.
MO Ruyue woke upte in the morning. Since neither of them had any elders, they did not have to wake up early to serve tea. Gu Ying woke up early in the morning to exercise. He had warned the servants to be quiet and not to wake the Princess up. He slept until noon.
Si Bao and Tang Tang hade several times. They knew that their mother was still sleeping, so they did not disturb her. Both of them frowned and looked worried.
Is Mother still not awake?
Tang Tang asked Chun Hua softly.
Just as Chun Hua was about to reply, she heard amotion in the house.
Aiya, the Princess is awake.
Chun Hua slipped into the house. Tang Tang and Si Bao wanted to go in when they heard that their mother had woken up, but they were stopped by Granny Rong.
Two little masters, you cant go in. Your mother is changing her clothes right now.
Thus, the two children waited patiently outside. It was not until a long timeter that their mother was helped out by Chun Hua..
Chapter 582 - 582: Crushing Him With Intelligence
Chapter 582 - 582: Crushing Him With Intelligence
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When MO Ruyue saw so many people at the door, including the two children, she remembered why she had woken up sote. She felt ufortable and her face gradually turned red.
Youre all here.
MO Ruyue took a deep breath to calm herself down.
Mother, are you sick?
Let me show you why your face is so red. My brother and I havee here several times in the morning. Mother is sleeping. If Mother is not feeling well, you have to tell her.
As Tang Tang spoke, she was about to take MO Ruyues pulse, but MO Ruyue grabbed her little hand.
Mother is fine. Its just that Im a little hot from wearing more clothes. Ill be fine in a while,
The two children did not suspect anything and believed MO Ruyues words.
Who knew that Tang Tang would say something shocking again, Mother, do you already have a younger brother and sister in your stomach?
Miss, we cant be sure yet.
Granny Rong saw her princesss embarrassment and quickly continued. Miss, lets wait for the Princess to wash up and have some food first.
What are you talking about?
Gu Ying came back after he finished his work outside.
In fact, he was not done yet. Because of County Magistrate Wu r s lead yesterday, there were many squires who wanted to buy the big houses outside the mountain tunnel.
Early in the morning, Gu Ying had sold more than ten sets. He was not prepared to sell the other half so casually.
He felt that if he wanted to find a wife, he could discuss it again. He might be able to make some changes.
Initially, he thought that those people might buy a set for each of them on ount of his wife being a princess. He did not expect them to be so popr overnight. Some people even wanted to buy two or three sets, but he did not agree. Each family would only sell one set to them at most.
He used the excuse that he still had something to do at home. In fact, he just wanted toe back and see if his wife had woken up. He had tortured his wife too much yesterday. He wondered if his wife would be angry when she woke up.
When will Uncle and Mother have younger brothers and sisters in their stomachs?
Have you cheered?
They all said that as long as Uncle could work hard, 1 would soon have a younger brother and sister.
Tang Tang widened her eyes and looked at Gu Ying expectantly, waiting for him to give her the answer she wanted to hear.
Oh, soon.
However, your mother must rest well during this period of time. She cant be disturbed by outsiders. Only when she recovers can she have a good body to give birth to your younger brothers and sisters.
Gu Ying racked his brains to organize these words. Go and help see if the food prepared for your mother is ready.
Your mother must be very hungry now.
He felt that if he didnt send the two children away, their questions would definitely be even harder to answer. He didnt mind, but he was afraid that his wife wouldnt be able to keep her face straight.
Yes.
Si Bao and Tang Tang nodded and went to the kitchen.
Princess.
Gu Ying stepped forward to help MO Ruyue up. In reality, he was cing his hand on her lower back and transferring some inner energy to her.
MO Ruyue suddenly felt warm and rxed.
What princess?
Nio Ruyue nced at Gu Ying. There were no outsiders here, so there was no need to put on an act. Besides, even if there were, she was the eldest here, so she could do whatever she wanted.
Hehe, then Ill call you wife.
Wife, lets go eat breakfast quickly. You must be hungry, right?
Ill get them to make some chicken soup for you. You should drink two more bowlster.
Gu Ying stepped forward to push Chun Hua away. Even Granny Rong and the others could not interfere at all. It was as if she was his wife, and they all stood up.
What else could Granny Rong and Chun Hua say?
They were legally married now.
Gu Ying looked at Granny Rong, Chun Hua, and the others following behind him and felt veryfortable. He would let them have a taste of his previous situation!
When they arrived at the dining table, Gu Ying personally pulled out a chair for MO Ruyue to sit on and quickly scooped a bowl of chicken soup for her.
Before MO Ruyue could take it with both hands, Gu Ying picked up the spoon and scooped a spoonful of soup from the bowl, blowing on it.
Wife, you eat the rest first. Ill feed you soup. Ive tried this soup, and the temperature is just right.
MO Ruyue gave him face and took a sip. Gu Ying asked expectantly, How is it?
Is it good? Is it fresh?
Mm.
Gu Ying: A proud face.
MO Ruyue picked up a soup bun and was about to stuff it into her mouth when Gu Ying stopped her.
He used his chopsticks to poke a hole in the top of the soup bun. After blowing on it for a while, it was almost not hot anymore. He then fed it to MO Ruyues mouth.
Come wife, its not hot anymore. Eat quickly. Ill get you another one.
How is it? Is it delicious?
Gu Ying watched as MO Ruyues chopsticks turned to the steamed sweet potatoes. The steamed sweet potatoes were ced a little far away. Gu Ying quickly stood up and picked the best one over. He carefully peeled the sweet potato and fed it to her.
Wife, this is delicious and very sweet. Ive eaten it in the morning too. Is it sweet?
Uncle, I also want to eat the soup dumplings that you blew cold.
Tang Tang suddenly realized that her mother was enjoying the food. Perhaps the food tasted even better after Uncle had blown it off.
Okay, wait a moment. When your mother finishes eating this, Ill blow one for you.
In the end, Tang Tang waited until MO Ruyue was full, but her uncle still didnt give her the soup dumplings.
At this moment, Gu Ying remembered that Tang Tang had asked him to blow out the soup dumplings. Seeing that there was still one left on the te, he quickly picked it up. At this time, the soup dumplings were almost cold, so there was no need to blow them.
Its almost cold now. You dont have to blow it to eat it.
After a meal, the whole family saw Gu Ying and MO Ruyue showing off their affection. Of course, it was Gu Yings one-sided show. Even so, they were still full and did not even need to eat lunch.
Brother, why do I feel like Uncle has changed into a different person?
Although Tang Tang didnt understand what dog food was, she felt that she was full without eating.
Si Bao said, Be more confident. It seems like its gone.
MO Ruyue felt awkward.
You havent been back for ten months, so why dont you hurry up and take a look at your Civil and Martial Arts Institute? Next year, you still have to give the emperor schrs and soldiers.
Wife, dont worry. I went to take a look early this morning. I also checked their courses and whether they have beenzy in the past ten months. Fortunately, there were a few people who could be used next year. Gu Ying was quite satisfied with those gentlemen.
Then I have to go to the hospital. I heard that a few people have already started to treat people. I have to go and take a look.
Ill apany my wife.
For the entire day, wherever MO Ruyue went, Gu Ying would follow her. He was just short of following her into thetrine.
Si Bao and Tang Tang, who had been following them, also went to school in the afternoon.
Because they didnt want to see their uncle who had changed. He was always sticking to their mother and getting what he wanted, but he still gave them a victorious look. That was so annoying.
Unfortunately, the two of them werent as thick- skinned as his uncle and werent as strong as his uncle in martial arts. They couldnt win either. The only way was to learn more knowledge and see if they could crush him with their intelligence.
Therefore, from today onward, the two children started to study hard..
Chapter 583 - 583: Buying a House
Chapter 583 - 583: Buying a House
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The next morning.
Gu Ying went to the Xue familys Bodyguard Agency early in the morning to n the route and location to the Snow World Vige. He might not be back until night.
Gu Ying did not want to torture MO Ruyue the night before, so MO Ruyue woke up early this morning. She had just finished her breakfast and was about to go to the hospital and the Womens College when she heard Qin Qingshuangs voice.
Youre really something. If you want to buy a house, go look for my sister-inw. Whats the use of asking me?
Dont let anyone wake me up again. I have to go to ss.
Qin Qingshuangs voice was very unpleasant. She entered the academy after she finished speaking.
Eh? Miss Qin
If I could see your sister-inw, would 1 stille and beg you?
Seeing that Qin Qingshuang did not give him any face and entered the
academy, Xiong Qiu could only remain indignant outside.
MO Ruyue had an impression of this person. When she was free with Gu Ying yesterday, she saw that some of the wedding gifts were given by these students.
One of the jade ornaments was a gift from this student named Xiong Qiu. It was quite expensive.
Why are you looking for me?
If theres anything, just tell us adults. Shes just a child and cant make a decision on many things.
l remember that you are a student of the Civil and Martial Arts Institute.
Dont you need to go to ss now?
MO Ruyues sudden voice startled Xiong Qiu. He turned around and saw MO Ruyue. He hurriedly took three steps back and greeted her respectfully.
Thismoner greets Princess!
No need to be polite. You havent answered why youre looking for me. Im free now.
Since Xiong Qiu Jian had already met the Princess, he had nothing to say. He originally wanted to see her. Yesterday, as soon as the ss ended, he hurriedly ran over, wanting to find this princess. However, he never had the chance because their principal had always been with the Princess. He did not dare to appear in front of the principal.
He had been here for a year. Although he was not familiar with the Princess, he knew that the Princess had always been easy to talk to.
Princess, I heard that the houses you had people build were for sale. I also want to buy one.
Oh, why do you suddenly want to buy a house here?
I remember that your home is in the capital, right?
Xiong Qiu did not expect the Princess to remember his matters so clearly. He was quite touched.
Thismoner knows that his abilities are limited and that he might have to study at the Civil and Martial Arts Academy for three to five years, so he wants to buy a ce to live.
In addition, I like West River Vige very much. I think this ce is especially good and want to settle down here. That way, I cane back often even if I go out in the future.
Xiong Qiu looked hopefully at MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue listened to Xiong Qius glib words, but his expression didnt seem like he was lying.
Although my house is in the countryside, its not cheap. Have you asked about the price?
Can a child like you make the decision?
Xiong Qiu, who was called a child, immediately became angry out of embarrassment. He was already sixteen, and he would be seventeen soon. He had already reached the age where he could get married.
However, the person in front of him was the Princess, so he suppressed his anger.
Of course I know the price.
Princess, I bought it for myself. I dont need my familys permission. Even if they knew, they wouldnt stop me.
But Ive already sent a letter to my parents about this matter, but Im afraid that when the timees, the house will be gone. Princess, can you leave a house for me first?
The day before yesterday, on the day of the Principal and Princess wedding, all the students and teachers in the school hade to eat. He had seen with his own eyes how easy it was to sell and how popr it was.
There were not many houses left now. If he had to wait for a letter from his parents in the capital, he would definitely not have a share of the house. However, he really didnt want to miss out on this opportunity. He thought about what kind of person Hua Sanpin was. He actually bought all of them. There were also a few that he had heard of. In addition, this princess looked like she was soaring to the sky. If he bought a house with these people, he would definitely not suffer a loss in the future.
MO Ruyue saw that Xiong Qiu was still calling himself amoner at the beginning, but now he was so anxious that he didnt even call himself amoner anymore. It could be seen that he really wanted to buy that house.
Selling it to him wasnt a bad idea.
Even if he didnt look at anything else, he had to give him face because he was Gu Yings student.
Although this person was mischievous, it was said that his father was also a high-ranking official in the capital. Looking at Xiong Qius brain and alertness, he would definitely have great achievements in the future. In the future, this would be their familys connections.
MO Ruyue was not stupid.
l can leave a set for you, but you have to be quick. At most, Ill wait for you for half a month.
You also know how many people are fighting for my house. If I leave one there and dont sell it, it definitely wont make sense.
Really?
Thank you, thank you. Ill write another letter now and urge my parents to reply faster.
Mo Ruyue nodded. She only entered West River Vige after Xiong Qiu hopped away.
West River Vige had changed a long time ago. The poption was increasing, and most of the people who had been away had returned. Other than the daughters who had married off, there were even many daughters who had returned with their sons-inw. There were no more inws in the inws families, so those who had moved to West River Vige with their families had settled down.
MO Ruyue didnt care about such things. To the old vige chief, it was a joyous asion. Who wouldnt want to be the vige chief when the vige had the most poption and was the most prosperous among all the viges?
That would not be a good vige chief.
As soon as they entered the vige, they saw the sanatorium, and there were several houses next to it.
Two of them belonged to Luo Genius and Quan Yongyuan.
The other three houses were in the sanatorium. Three soldiers had found wives. After they got married, they moved out and built their own houses. The wives of these three families would usually help the people in the sanatorium. They would do someundry and cooking. Of course, they would not do it for free. The sanatorium would pay them.
On the other hand, Quan Yongyuan and Luo Tiancai had also moved their families to West River Vige, They wanted to take root here.
They had once promised MO Ruyue that they would stay here for five years. They thought that if they left after five years, the old habits of the veterans might not be known, so they wanted to continue staying here.
Now, their medical skills were more than 30% better than before. Most importantly, they deeply liked West River Vige. They liked the scenery and the people here.
Princess.
Quan Yongyuan was sitting by the window and taking the patients pulse. He was also looking out the window and listening to the patients pulse carefully when a person suddenly appeared in his line of sight. Looking closely, it was their princess!
Nio Ruyue hurriedly waved her hand at him, indicating that he should continue and ignore her.
After Quan Yongyuan finished reading the patients pulse and prescribed the prescription, he walked over to MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue spoke first. Youre so busy here. If theres someone in my medical school who can take a pulse, Ill ask them to help.
Not all the girls in the medical school had reached the standard, but they had been studying for more than two years. Moreover, many of them came from families with some medical background. Those few could definitely do it.
There were also a few especially smart ones. Mo Ruyue felt that they could do it too.
Alright, Princess. Ill do it in the afternoon.
The Princess suggestion suited their current situation perfectly..
Chapter 584 - 584: Playing
Chapter 584 - 584: ying
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue passed through the entire vige and went to the medical college and the womens college.
There werent many people in the womens college now, but there were two to three times more than when they first started.
Families that could send their girls to study were all families that doted on their girls. At the same time, their family background was also quite good.
When the students in the academy saw MO Ruyue, they all stopped to greet her. MO Ruyue hurriedly waved her hand and left. It was better for her not to disturb them.
She then went to the hospital to personally test a few students who were usually more serious in their studies. She wrote down a few of the more outstanding names and gave them to Quan Yongyuan and the others as a reference when she left. The rest could be used as medical interns first.
There were two of them who were more proficient in surgery. She wanted to keep these two and train them to be the chief surgeons of gynecology and obstetrics in the future.
He went to both schools and found no problems, so he went to Qin Qingfeis house.
Now that Wang Tiezhu and Wang Dazhu were living close to each other, Qin Qingfei and Mrs. Wang basically took care of the child together every day.
Mrs. Wangs child was about a year old when he was learning how to speak. The child was very cute and everyone wanted to y with him.
Call me auntie.
The two children were a little curious about MO Ruyue. The word aunt was too difficult to describe, so the two children immediately fell silent.
Oh, Ive only been away for more than a month, and I dont even recognize Auntie anymore, haha
Auntie, its a bit of a mouthful. I think well have to wait for a while.
The little girl in Qin Qingfeis arms was cute and tender, and she was blowing bubbles. She was only two or three months old, and it was impossible for her to know anyone. MO Ruyue also looked at her for a while.
Qingfei, if you get pregnant again, youll definitely have twins.
MO Ruyue felt that Qin Qingfei only had one child this time. It was probably due to her previous injuries. An said that their family had the genes of twins.
Sister-inw, why dont I give birth to my own child? Your child will definitely be as cute as Tang Tang and Si Bao.
l think so too.
Mrs. Wang agreed with Qingfei.
MO Ruyue wasnt a thin-skinned person. It would be best if we could have twins in our lifetime, hahaha.
What are you guys talking about?
You can recognize people by hearing.
Mrs. Wang and Qin Qingfei immediately winked.
Sister-inw, hurry up and go back. Otherwise, Big Brother will have a ck face with us. Haha
Wife, your letter.
Gu Ying pretended not to hear what Qin Qingfei said and took out a letter to help his wife.
Whose letter is it?
This was the first time someone other than his family had wffitten to West River Vige.
MO Ruyue could not think of anyone who would write to her. After all, everyone in the family was at home and no one had gone far away.
Its from the Nortnd. Open it and take a look.
Mrs. Wang and Qin Qingfei stopped talking. They were still coaxing the child not to disturb MO Ruyue from reading the letter. They also wanted to know who would write a letter to MO Ruyue, and the letter was specifically for her.
When Gu Ying mentioned the Northern Kingdom, the first person that came to MO Ruyues mind was the Northern Kingdoms Crown Prince. However, she felt that they had not interacted much with each other, so they should not have written to each other.
Opening the envelope, the first content revealed the identity of the letters sender. It was indeed the Crown Prince of the Nortnd.
Is it the Crown Prince of the Nortnd? What does he mean by sending a letter?
Gu Ying did not read the contents of the letter.
MO Ruyue directly told him the nature of the matter and let him see for himself.
Do you want to go?
Gu Ying saw that MO Ruyue did not say anything. He did not know what she was thinking.
Lets go after the new year. Its going to be the new year soon. The weather is cold and I dont want to go out.
Mrs. Wang and Qin Qingfei listened to the couples charades and were confused.
Alright, we still have to go there. We still have more than a months time, so we can prepare well. When the timees, there shouldnt be any problems.
MO Ruyue smiled and nodded at Gu Ying.
Its almost the new year. Where are you going?
Qin Qingfei only understood half of it.
Didnt your sister-inw just say that its almost the new year and the weather is getting colder? She doesnt want to go out.
Its hard to tell you now. Ill tell you when I get back.
Qin Qingfei stopped asking when she heard Gu Yings words. Indeed, she wouldnt understand anything even if she asked, so she didnt ask. Mrs. Wang wouldnt ask either.
By the way, the vigers and the people from the other viges collected quite a number of medicinal herbs before you left. They all said that they would wait for you toe back before selling them. Are you free these few days?
Now, there were big and small matters in the vige. Other than Wang Tiezhu helping MO Ruyues family, Wang Dazhus family had always been the same as before. MO Ruyue would never forget how the couple had helped her in the beginning. Therefore, the matter of collecting medicinal herbs had always been done by the husband and wife. Of course, they did not work for free.
Sure, let them start tomorrow morning.
The next morning, MO Ruyue did not wake up, so Gu Ying helped to take a look at the herbs.
The greenhouses in the vige were basically expanded. They had always used ss below one meter and straw curtains above one meter. These methods were both venttion and warmth. They were also cheaper than using all ss. Now, the vegetables grown in the greenhouses were sold out.
MO Ruyue had picked a lot of vegetables from the greenhouse in her home and sent them to the pce. She had also sent some to her master, who she knew well. She had also left behind more than half of her own food. She did not sell much, mainly because her familys ie did not depend on this.
Because the vige had started to grow greenhouse vegetables sincest year, they had more experience this year thanst year. Their business had also increased several timespared tost year. Not only could every household in the vige live a fat year, but they also had more than enough.
MO Ruyue had personally gone to the fields to take a look. She had not been here for a long time, but the fields were still the same as before. The only difference was that almost all the vigers fields looked much more fertile than before. Moreover, after the rice harvest this year, every household had nted Chinese milk vetch early on, which could not only enrich the fields but also allow bees to collect honey.
The purple flowers all over the mountains in the middle of winter were very pleasing to the eye.
MO Ruyue even saw a few people dressed like schrs in a field, as if they were walking in the spring.
Thats because youre a student of the academy. You can skip ss as you please?
Gu Ying looked carefully and shook his head. No, its probably a student from outside.
His students dared to skip sses when he was at home, unless they wanted to eat bamboo shoots and stir-fried meat.
He had seen that no student had the guts to do so.
The two of them were walking around the fields when a few people dressed like young masters suddenly came over from the other side. There were also a few girls among them.
At first nce, those people were obviously out to y. She did not expect that their ce had be a ce to y.
After those people arrived, they were about to go to the fields, but they were scolded back to the ridge by the person guarding the bees.
At first, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying did not think much of it. They could just leave it to themselves. After walking for a while, they realized that three more groups of people had arrived. There were five groups of people in total, including the morning.
There were four groups of people, and they all wanted to go down to the fields to y..
Chapter 585 - 585: The Season to Gather Honey
Chapter 585 - 585: The Season to Gather Honey
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Nio Ruyue looked at the beekeepers who kept chasing people away. They were really tired. Not only did they have to keep an eye on the field, but they also had to pay close attention to the newly attracted bees. They also had to make sure that the Chinese milk vetch in the field was not ruined by tourists.
Lets go back.
After returning to the vige, MO Ruyue went straight to Wang Tiezhu.
Big Brother, Sister-inw.
Wang Tiezhu was helping the vigers settle ounts and sell vegetables. In fact, he was just watching the elderly in the vige from the side, not to be deceived by the vegetable sellers.
There are quite a lot of people whoe to our vige to y. I see that they all like to go to the flower fields. Why dont you discuss with the vigers and specially approve a piece of flower field for those tourists to y?
But you can y, but you have to pay money. Its not something you cane and go as you please. Thats the fertilizer weve worked hard to nt. Upon hearing MO Ruyues words, Tiezhu immediately understood that this was indeed a good thing.
In fact, many people often came to the flower fieldst year. Some even stole flowers. Those flowers would not live for two days if they were brought back. However, those people said that they were useless. Someone had to watch over them.
Alright, Ill do it now.
Wait, since we have already approved a ce for those people to y, then
we should make it better. Its only natural that we can collect the fees.
Throughout the whole process, Gu Ying had been watching his capable wife from the side. She was glowing. His wife was just so smart and capable!
After Wang Tiezhu left MO Ruyues side, he immediately called a few idle young adults from the vige to go up the mountain to chop wood. He wanted to make a few flower swings for the flower field and also saw some original wooden stakes to make stools.
These tasks were not difficult for the vigers at all. In a few days, a row of five swings was erected in the most barren flower field, surrounding the edge of the field. There were many wooden stakes that were as high as the crook of their legs for the tired tourists to sit down and rest.
This flower field was almostbined with thend of several families in the vige. It was originally grown on barrennd. After two years of cultivation, it was still rtively barren. It became a special ce for tourists to y. This time, it might be of use.
Of course, the money earned from this piece ofnd wasnt all from the few families who had opened up thend.
MO Ruyue asked them to buy therge piece ofnd at twice the price of the low- gradend. MO Ruyue paid the bulk of the money, and the vige paid the rest. If they were unwilling, they could solve their own problems.
For example, those who came to y and caused trouble needed someone to maintain them.
MO Ruyue had paid the bulk of the money, but there wasnt much left. Each family only paid a few dozen copper coins.
The money given by those people who came to visit was all handed over to the vige for the repair of the ancestral hall. In addition, it was paid to the people who patrolled the vige every day.
Although this vige belonged to everyone, and it was only right for every household to contribute some manpower, free work would notst long. After a long time, there would be people who wanted to cheat. If they were paid, the nature would be different. If they did not do well, they would not be required to work, and they would not be paid.
It could be considered as a restraint for everyone, but it could also be considered as a guarantee for everyone.
Everyone in the vige had benefited from this, and no one disagreed, especially those who sold thend. Even if they nted the most unpicky soybeans on those plots ofnd every year, they would not be able to harvest much. It seemed that they would have to raise them for a few more years. It was better to exchange them for money now. Moreover, there were also people from their families on patrol, so they could continue to benefit in the future.
Every farm had a few bee buckets. After taking away the bee buckets that were used for tourists, there were still many bees lingering around, which added a lot of wild fun.
Of course, the ce with the most bee buckets was still MO Ruyues house. The number of bee buckets in her house had doubled this year. In the past two years, there were more than a hundred bee buckets in her house.
It was the season to gather honey again.
Their family had opened an inn in the vige, and the business of the tourists was quite good. The fried chicken and sauced duck needed by the nursing home all required honey, so MO Ruyue did not n to sell the honey at all. She felt that no matter how much she had, it would not be enough.
He also bought all the honey produced in the vige and only gave a few jars to those he was familiar with.
On the other hand, when those who came to y saw the scene of honeying out, they mored to buy some to try. In the end, they got a hundred small porcin jars that were half a catty. The price was twice as expensive as the clothes in town. They were sold to them, and each person was limited to half a catty.
Even so, MO Ruyue still told those people that the honey was not much better than the ones sold in town. It was just that the Yunying Nectar tasted a little different, but those people were still fighting to buy it.
On the other hand, there were quite a number of people in the vige who took out some of their savings and sold them. They all thought that they would raise them well next year. If they raised more, they could earn dozens of taels of silver.
Those who came to visit wanted to buy something to take home when they left. Without honey, they went to every household in the vige to ask if it was good to buy vegetables.
As for the fried chicken and duck in the sanatorium, there was no need to mention the skewers. The sanatorium had already started to hire helpers. The wages were not low, but the work was tiring. It was the kind that could not be stopped for an entire day. Business was really good.
The livestock in the vige, especially the chickens and ducks, were basically all sent to the sanatorium. There was no need to sell them at all. Just the sanatorium and inn in the vige could buy all the livestock in their vige. Sometimes, they had to buy them from other viges.
As more people bought it, the reputation of West River Viges fried chicken, sauced duck and skewers became even more famous. The news spread like wildfire. Even people from Lianshan County came to buy it every day. Now that Lianshan County and West River Vige were connected, they were willing to run around if they wanted to eat it within an hours journey.
Because there were more peopleing and going, the stalls on both sides of the mountain tunnel from the entrance of West River Vige to Reliance Town were doing well. The inn was basically full every day.
Previously, Mo Ruyues suggestions for the vendors, whether they were selling small things or snacks, were more novel and attractive than the usual ones. ording to MO Ruyue, these stalls were set up by people from their vige.
Seeing West River Vige develop in the direction that MO Ruyue had originally imagined, she was especially satisfied.
On this day, MO Ruyue came back from the medical school and met Xiong Qiu on the way.
Has your parents reply arrived?
Xiong Qiu didnt expect that the princess would still remember the matter of a small character like him!
Yes, Princess.
Xiong Qiu immediately opened the letter from his parents and presented it to MO Ruyue.
Chun Hua, bring him to the house. You can help him with the procedures for selling the house. Be careful.
Yes.
Xiong Qiu followed Chun Hua to see his house.
Have you prepared the money?
Chun Hua wanted to settle the matter in one go so that she wouldnt have to go back and forth.
Alright, alright, I brought them all.
Xiong Qiu knew this in his heart.
Half a dayter, he got the deed to the house and looked at the house. He was extremely happy.
The servant boy had already gone into the house to clean up. When he had his day off, he would be able to return to his own residence. Just thinking about it made him happy. He immediately went to the Civil and Martial Arts Institute to show off to his ssmates..
Chapter 586 - 586: Such a Small Princess Residence?
Chapter 586 - 586: Such a Small Princess Residence?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Time passed very quickly. In the blink of an eve, there were only a few days
left until the new year.
The vegetables in the greenhouses of every household were almost sold out. They were all prepared to stop selling them. The rest were kept for their families to eat during the New Year, and there were also gifts for rtives and friends.
Nowadays, people from West River Vige would be embarrassed to say that they were from West River Vige if they did not bring a handful of vegetables with them.
Just as every household in West River Vige was preparing to wee the new year warmly, the imperial eunuch came to deliver an edict.
As soon as the eunuch left the mountain tunnel of Ming Yue Mountain, someone ran to the princess manor without stopping. Everyone in Fence Vige knew this. As long as someone dressed like the eunuch appeared, they would definitely go to the princess manor.
Chun Hua thanked the man and gave him a tael of silver. The man left without even pping his horse.
Now that they had a life where they did not have to worry about food and drink, it was all because of Princess Ming Yues bestowment. How could they take money just to report to her?
If he went home, he would be whipped by his biological parents.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying dressed themselves and went to the Princesss manor to open the door, waiting for the eunuch to arrive.
Not long after, the eunuch arrived with his team.
The eunuch alighted from the carriage, and there was another one behind him. MO Ruyue guessed that the pce had bestowed her with something again. Wasnt she afraid of emptying the pce? Although there were many treasures in the pce, they shouldnt be rewarded so frequently. It was really too wasteful.
The eunuch read out the imperial edict. The first part was indeed about the various gifts given to MO Ruyue, but MO Ruyue did not feel anything when she heard it.
Because the Northern Kingdom Crown Prince is more familiar with General
Xue and Princess Ming Yue, I would like to request General Xue and Princess
Ming Yue to properly entertain the Northern Kingdom Crown Prince for me!
After the eunuch finished reading the imperial edict, a person got out of the carriage behind him. Who else could it be but the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom? We meet again.
Its so warm here!
Su Luo sighed with admiration.
MO Ruvue and Gu Ying thought. We dont want to meet you at all.
They had already been sent over and could not be returned. What else could they do?
However, Gu Ying felt that there was something wrong with the way the Prince of the Northern Kingdom was looking at him.
Princess Ming Yue, General Xue, the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom has arrived. I will return to the capital to report!
The eunuch could see that the two of them were unhappy. He had no choice but to leave quickly in order not to be disliked here. He was not even embarrassed to ask for a reward.
He entered the carriage and left fifty soldiers behind to protect the Prince of the Northern Kingdom.
In the end, Chun Hua was still quick and handed the eunuch a food box for him to eat on the way.
Its indeed warmer here than in the north. 1 just dont know that the crown prince ising here to celebrate the new year.
MO Ruyue hadnt thought of a way to talk to the Northern Kingdoms Crown Prince. In fact, she was a little annoyed when she saw him.
Gu Ying thought that they couldnt just leave the Northern Kingdoms Crown Prince there. After all, he was still the Crown Prince of a country. Moreover, the Emperor had specially asked him and his wife to entertain him.
This matter could be considered a big deal. If the Prince of the Northern Kingdom was unhappy and went to the Emperor to say something, or use this as an excuse to do something, it would not be good.
Little did he know that just as he finished speaking, the Northern Kingdoms Crown Prince sized him up from head to toe, left to right, but did not answer his question.
l just arrived and heard that General Xue and Princess Ming Yue got married a month ago.
Why didnt you tell me that you were getting married so that I could attend your wedding?
As he spoke, he waved his hand behind him. The two guards who followed him chased the carriage he was in earlier to the front and lifted the curtain of the carriage.
l came in such a hurry that I dont know that Princess Ming Yue and General Xue are married. This is a small token of my appreciation, and can be considered as a supplement for your wedding.
This is really expensive.
We were in a hurry, and this matter is a long story. Its really not good to announce it to the outside world, so we have been negligent. I hope the Crown Prince can forgive us.
Crown Prince Residence, please!
Gu Ying made an inviting gesture to the Northern Kingdoms Crown Prince.
Su Luo thought to herself that it really wasnt easy. If he didnt show off the gifts in this carriage, she probably wouldnt know how long she would have to talk to him at the door before she invited him into the residence.
If it wasnt for the fact that Princess Ming Yue wasnt happy, he really wanted to make things difficult for this brat.
He actually married Princess Ming Yue without him knowing!
From now on, Ill have to disturb Princess Ming Yue and General Xue. You dont have to be so polite with me. Just call me Su Luo.
Su Luo smiled as he entered the princess manor. He told them not to be polite, but he said something polite.
The Crown Prince is the Crown Prince, how can we overstep our boundaries?
Gu Ying felt that they were familiar with each other, so how could they call him by his name? Although he dared to call him by his name, he had to say something ttering now.
Theres no need for formalities. Why doesnt Princess Ming Yue call me Big Brother Su? Actually, I feel that directly calling me big brother will make our two countries seem more friendly.
MO Ruyue also remembered that when they were at the border, Su Luo had told her that his name was Su Luo.
She thought about it for a while. This foreign prince didnt stay in his own country to prepare for the new year. Instead, he came to a foreign country and even came to her, the princess manor.
This was definitely a request he had made to Ji Hong. Otherwise, Ji Hong would never have sent a foreign crown prince to her residence.
Then Ill do as you say.
MO Ruyue felt that with the status between their two countries, there was nothing wrong with calling him Big Brother Su. She even felt that this should be the way he wanted to address her.
She and Gu Ying looked at each other. Both of them were thinking about the same question. They felt that the main reason why Su Luo came was probably because of MO Ruyue. Did this address mean that she hade here?
However, he could not rule out other possibilities.
For example, he had lost the battle and had to cede territory and pay reparations. He might not be able to stay in the pce and had toe out to hide. It was also possible that there was internal strife in the Northern Pce.
As for Su Luo, who was walking in front, he looked at the princess manor. The more he looked at it, the more he frowned. Could this princess manor be called a princess manor? Isnt it too small?
To put it nicely, the Emperor of Xi Liang bestowed Mo Ruyue with the title of Princess Ming Yue. It was because MO Ruyue had made many great contributions and deserved it. That Ji Hong was stingy, only giving such a small princess residence?
If he went back to the north, he would definitely build a princess residence that was as big as these four!
No matter how unwilling MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were, they could only treat this person well.
MO Ruyue had already asked Granny Rong and Granny Yan to bring the maidservants to the east courtyard to clean up a small courtyard for Su Luo to live in.
On the other side, Chun Hua brought the maids to serve tea and snacks.
Su Luo saw that MO Ruyue and Gu Ying had been apanying him the whole time, but they didnt say much. Actually, he was also quite embarrassed.
General Xue should have a lot of things to do. You can go and do your own things. Dont worry about me.
Actually, he had wanted to tell MO Ruyue about their rtionship, but seeing MO Ruyues resistance toward him, he was afraid that if he told her, she would not let him stay here.
When Gu Ying and MO Ruyue heard him call her Ming Yue, they felt their teeth clench.
Its okay. I dont usually have anything to do.
Of course, I have to apany you.
Gu Ying sat below the Crown Prince and said with a smile.
Thus, the three of them chatted awkwardly together. Of course, only MO Ruyue and Gu Ying felt that they were chatting awkwardly. Su Luo didnt feel awkward at all. Instead, he felt that this was a rare and pleasant asion..
Chapter 587 - 587: You guys are so smart!
Chapter 587 - 587: You guys are so smart!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
In a while, it was lunchtime. Su Luo looked in surprise at the two children who ran in and looked like Gu Ying. It could be said that the three of them looked exactly the same.
If it wasnt for the fact that the girl was dressed like a girl, he wouldnt have been able to tell the difference between her and the boy.
What shocked him even more was that the two children actually called MO
Ruyue Mother.
General Xue is really good!
What if he wanted to flip the table now? These two children were at least five or six years old, and his sister was only twenty years old. This beast only married his sister now?
The two children also looked curiously at the handsome uncle in the hall. They looked carefully and realized that this uncle looked a little like their mother.
Mother, who is this uncle?
Tang Tang had never been afraid of outsiders, and so had Si Bao. However, he had always been a man of few words and was toozy to speak.
Since his sister had already asked the question, he didnt need to ask anymore.
You can just call me uncle.
When Su Luo saw the two children, he kept looking at them curiously. He didnt wait for MO Ruyue to answer the two childrens questions and directly answered them. He waved at the two children.
Uncle, are you my mothers brother?
Why havent I seen him before?
Su Luo liked the first sentence, but the second sentence pierced his heart.
Its all Uncles fault foring toote. Take this and y with it.
As Su Luo spoke, he took out two jade pendants from somewhere. MO Ruyue looked very familiar with them.
Si Bao and Tang Tang looked at MO Ruyue but did not immediately take the two jade pendants from Su Luffs hands. Uncle gave it to you. Just take it.
Sit down and eat. Im hungry.
Su Luo looked like he couldnt be disobeyed, and MO Ruyue nodded.
You dare to give it to me, but you dont dare to take it?
Because of the cross marks on the two jade pendants, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying had forgotten to correct the children for calling Su Luo Uncle. By the time they remembered to correct them, it was already toote.
Then Young Master Su, please enjoy your meal. If you need anything, you can send someone to call me.
Su Luo saw what Nio Ruyue meant. They were going to eat separately from him. How could she do that?
He didnt say a word, but stood up and followed MO Ruyue and the others out.
When MO Ruyue and the others saw him, they turned around and looked at
him in astonishment.
Lets go. Lets go eat together.
Young Master Su, we have specially prepared a ce for you to eat. I believe that you are noble and are not used to eating with farmers like us.
Gu Ying did not want his wife to be in a difficult position, so he took the initiative to step forward.
Hahaha, General Xue is wrong.
Princess Ming Yue and I. She felt as if she was my biological sister.
l also like the two little fellows very much.
After saying that, Su Luo looked at MO Ruyue and Gu Ying in disbelief.
Dont tell me you want to have fun together as a family and leave me alone?
What he meant was that he was a guest at your residence, but he was ignored by you. Was he embarrassed? Was it reasonable?
You guys might not know this, but when I was young, I often made mistakes and was punished to go to the Cold Pce. Thats why 1 was especially afraid of being alone.
As soon as he finished speaking, Tang Tang ran to his side and held his hand.
She didnt know why, but perhaps it was because this person looked like her mother, so when she heard her uncle say that he was so pitiful, her heart ached.
Granny Rong and Chun Hua often told them stories about the Cold Pce, so they knew that it was a very scary ce.
Mother, can Uncle eat with us? It shouldnt be too crowded with his chopsticks.
Haha, of course.
MO Ruyue thought to herself, This little cotton jacket thats leaking air!
After receiving MO Ruyues affirmation, Tang Tang turned around and smiled at Su Luo. Uncle, lets go eat together.
Mm, your name is Qingting? What a nice name.
Her brothers name was Qinghao, and his name sounded nice.
If you have time in the future, Uncle will bring you to Uncles hometowvn to y. Although its not as warm as here, its still very fun.
Gu Yings face darkened as he looked at Su Luo, who was holding Tang Tangs hand.
This guy was really too detestable. It was all because of that face that he took advantage of.
He had worked hard to build a good rtionship with the two children. How long had it taken for him to have such a rtionship with the children? Now, this person had just arrived and snatched all the attention of the two children.
Tang Tang actually took the initiative to plead with her mother because of him?
Tang Tang had never begged MO Ruyue for his sake!
He felt that he had to eat more sweet food at noon, or else his teeth might not be able to take it.
Therefore, Gu Ying, who was angry and had apetitive mentality, had a special liking for the dishes in front of Si Bao and Tang Tang during lunch. Moreover, they were the kind that he couldnt reach and needed the two children to help him.
The two children were very polite to their guests. They felt that even their uncle had food that he couldnt get. Thinking about how it was their uncles first timeing to their house, they couldnt get any food from afar, so they very considerately picked up a lot of food for Su Luo. This scene made Gu Ying even angrier.
In the end, he still felt sorry for the two children for not being able to eat properly. He did not want them to take any more food. Instead, he put a lot of their favorite food in the two childrens bowls.
Su Luo was the most satisfied after the meal.
The food in the princesss manor is really delicious. The appearance, aroma, and taste are all things that have never been eaten outside. Im already full and still want to eat.
Especially the food that his two cute little nephews picked up. The taste was exceptionally fresh and sweet.
Gu Ying pretended not to hear him.
Its not good to rest immediately after a meal. Its not good for health. Young Master Su, why dont youe with me to take a look at our vige school? Su Luo nodded without saying anything.
He was prepared to stay here until the end of the new year. There was still a lot of time, so of course he had to slowly find some fun.
Uncle, do you want Uncle to go to the Civil and Martial Arts Academy?
Would he go to the girls school in the vige to take a look?
Uncle?
Only then did Su Luo realize that the two children were actually calling Gu Ying uncle, not father. Or was it that calling him father meant calling him uncle?
Tang Tang and Si Bao felt that it was nothing and they didnt notice it, so no one exined it to him. Gu Ying and MO Ruyue didnt want to exin it to him either.
Especially MO Ruyue. Even now, she had an indescribable feeling toward Su Luo. She didnt know if she hated him or not, but she was also a little wary. Men are not allowed to go to the womens college in the vige to watch. Its very rude and against the rules, Si Bao corrected his sister.
Seeing that no one answered the question, Su Luo stopped asking.
He could let his people slowly investigate these things. When he heard Si Bao say that there was a womens college in the vige, he was surprised.
You have a womens college here?
Was Little Qingting also studying at a womens college?
Yes, Tang Tang nodded proudly. Its a school that Mother specially opened for girls like us.
Reading, needlework, arithmetic and archery. Ive learned a lot. Now Ive been promoted to ss B. Im still the youngest and smartest student in ss B!
Tang Tang looked like she was waiting for praise.
Wow, our Qingting is really amazing!
Big Brother is also a ss-B student in the Civil and Martial Arts Institute.
He is also the youngest and the smartest! That Qinghao is also very powerful! You guys are so smart!
Can I go to the vige to take a look?
It was said that the Princess had single-handedly brought the entire town to life. Now, everyone could eat their fill and wear warm clothes.
On the way here, he had asked the eunuch about this..
Chapter 588 - 588: Accepting Punishment
Chapter 588 - 588: epting Punishment
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue nodded and led him to the vige.
For a person like this, the more you dont let him do anything, the more he will have a way to secretly go by himself. Its better to let him go openly. Theres nothing to hide.
As they entered West River Vige, Su Luo felt that his eyes were not enough to see. Was this really a small vige?
Not to mention other things, just the orderly stone paved roads in the vige led to every household. Other ces were neatly nted with some green nts, and it looked clean.
MO Ruyue had to know that Su Luo felt that these vegetables were just some green nts in his eyes. She really wanted to spit on him and say that the
Crown Prince was indeed the Crown Prince. He was simply the most incisive Crown Prince!
Originally, he thought that Su Luo would just take a casual look around the vige and leave. In the end, he wandered around for most of the day, from the beginning of the vige to the end of the vige. He didnt even miss the sanatorium and the womens college medical school. He even went to the back of the mountain.
Many people in the vige saw Su Luffs face. Seeing that he looked so simr to MO Ruyue, they all revealed gossipy faces.
However, they also knew that this person was either rich or noble at a nce. It was impossible for them to talk to him.
Princess Ming Yue wasnt someone they could just ask about any gossip they wanted. Some people were already considered powerful if they could find out anything new from the outside.
Therefore, every household was scratching their hearts, hoping that some capable person would find out first and share it with them. After all, this was a big melon!
When Su Luo saw the Chinese milk vetch in all the fields on MO Ruyues side, he was even more dumbfounded.
What kind of weather is this? How can there still be flowering nts?
He knew that some people had flowers in their greenhouses, but this was an open-air field. How could such beautiful flowers be nted?
A sea of flowers.
There were also bees flying in the fields. They buzzed and looked full of vitality. It didnt feel like winter at all. Instead, it felt like spring.
The sun was shining brightly at noon today, and many bees had sneaked out of the wind bucket for Sullo to see.
Su Luo looked at West River Vige with envy. This Xi Liang Country was so good. Even the vige was so rich, beautiful, and rich!
Even winter was better than spring.
He didnt expect MO Ruyue and Gu Ying to answer him. He went straight to the beekeepers in the fields to ask for answers.
Since those people were keeping bees here, and there were basically bee buckets in every field, except for the flower field that was specially used for people to y, these flowers were actually specially nted to keep bees. He felt that his guess was definitely correct.
He went to ask one and coincidentally bumped into Chen Shitou. Chen Shitou was a simple and honest person. Seeing that this person hade with their princess, he did not think of hiding anything and directly told him everything.
These things were easy to find out, so MO Ruyue and the others didnt want to hide anything from Su Luo.
Su Luo naturally asked Chen Shitou about a lot of things in the vige. It was only when it was time for dinner that he returned to the princess manor. He thought that since there was still a lot of time left, she would go to West River Vige every day.
After two days, Su Luo had basically inquired about most of the crops in the vige.
Especially in the middle of winter, they could still grow vegetables in that shed to eat. This was simply simply simply too much!
It was just that the others were too stupid, but his sister was still the smartest!
They could also use the greenhouse to grow flowers and nts, but why couldnt they grow vegetables?
He said that those flowers and nts were useless. It was better to raise vegetables and feed the people.
After five days, Su Luo finally couldnt sit still anymore and took the initiative to look for MO Ruyue.
Little Sister Princess, you see.
Over the past few days, Su Luo had used all the shamelessness he had in his life on this younger sister of his. He had forcefully called her princess sister.
MO Ruyue would definitely not agree if he called her sister directly. He felt that it was not the right time to call her sister yet, so he came up with this nickname.
Sister Princess, look at the greenhouse in your vige. Can it be nted in our northern country?
MO Ruyue looked at Su Luo. This person must havee for her. He hadnt said anything to her for the past few days. He had been running up the mountain every day, looking at her and asking questions. Now that he had the chance to talk to her alone, he only asked about the vegetables.
Although this is a little whimsical, its not impossible. However, its very troublesome. The result of spending a huge sum of money is not proportional to the cost.
How is it that the effort is not proportional to the gain? Princess, can you tell me in detail?
Itll make me give up.
It was winter for half a year in your year, and there were storms and blizzards from time to time. Do you think the vegetables inside can survive even if you build a shed like ours?
Simple nting is definitely not possible unless you put charcoal fire in it.
Not to mention six months, the cost of three months will only be affordable to you dignitaries.
Thosemoners could not afford to eat such vegetables. They were not eating vegetables, but gold.
Su Luo also knew that what MO Ruyue said made sense, but he still wanted to struggle.
He really didnt want to watch themoners get thinner and thinner year by year, and more and more people died year by year.
Then I wonder if Little Sister Princess can help us think of a good idea? They could eat vegetables in winter?
Why dont you sell me more of them every year?
Su Luo didnt beat around the bush with MO Ruyue. If she couldnt grow it, she could just buy it directly, right?
Then you really think too highly of me. Do you know how much my shed costs? Only the people in our vige can build it, and thats because of various reasons. Moreover, youve seen the situation of every household in our vige.
However, they could only maintain this situation at the moment. It was impossible to nt more.
After all, there was only so muchnd. Even if she nted vegetables in the entire Lianshan County in winter, it would still depend on whether there was enough ss.
If the vegetables were grown in a shed that could be built by a rich family, who would want to sell them for a little?
The poor wanted to sell it, but they couldnt afford to build a shed. How could they sell it? West River Vige had built the shed because of her connections.
Im just saying. Dont take it to heart.
Su Luo also knew that this matter was very difficult. If he really wanted to buy these things from Xi Liang, he would have to go to the emperor of Xi Liang.
There was no way to exchange some resources back from here every year. The signed treaty said that the two countries would trade, but it was not easy for their country to get good resources from Xi Liang.
During dinner, all of Su Luffs bad mood disappeared because the food was too delicious and too healing. With a mouthful of food, she forgot all her worries.
After dinner, they returned to their own small courtyard. Su Luffs personal guard asked him, Why doesnt the Crown Prince directly acknowledge
Princess Ming Yue as his kin?
Su Luo stopped the guard with a look.
The guard quickly knelt down and apologized. He knew that he had made a big mistake.
If you say such words again in the future, you can ept your punishment and leave. Yes, sir!
You may leave.
The bodyguard walked out of the door and wiped the cold sweat off his forehead.
The guard felt that he had been following the Crown Prince for a few days and had actually forgotten how the Crown Prince hade to Xi Liang from the Northern Kingdom..
Chapter 589 - 589: A Distress Thing
Chapter 589 - 589: A Distress Thing
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The Crown Prince didnt have the support of his mothers n, and because the Crown Prince had voluntarily surrendered in this battle, he had even ceded his territory topensate them. After returning to the pce, he was joined by the other princes and forced out of the Nortnd.
Rather than saying that he was a guest, it was better to say that he was a hostage in exchange for benefits.
Their Taizhizi didnt openly acknowledge Princess Ming Yue because they were afraid of bringing trouble to her.
Actually, with his thoughts, the Crown Prince was worrying too much. However, the Crown Princes only rtive in this world, other than his cold-hearted and cold-blooded Imperial Father, was only this Princess Ming Yue. The Crown Princes cautiousness towards the matter of recognizing rtives was inevitable.
In fact, he had already investigated. Although there were not many people in the princess manor, the security in the manor was as tight as an iron bucket. It was impossible for those people to even hear the movements of the grass in the princess manor.
But no matter what, these things were not something a guard like him could interfere in.
Two days before the new year, MO Ruyue was so annoyed by Su Luo that she came to him first.
Usually, Su Luo would go to MO Ruyue first. Otherwise, MO Ruyue would not even look at him for the entire day.
When Su Luo saw that her sister had taken the initiative to look for him today, the little deer in her heart was extremely excited and cheered.
On the surface, he also showed a very happy expression. He could not control the expression on his face at all.
Princess Little Sister, why do you have the time toe and find me today?
Did something happen?
MO Ruyue waved her hand to signal for all the servants in the room to leave. Chun Hua then led everyone out.
Su Luffs personal guard was still unwilling to leave, but with a light gaze from Su Luo, he ran faster than Chun Hua.
Su Luo was still considered an outsider to MO Ruyue. When the two of them were talking in the house, the door had to be opened, and there had to be servants guarding the door.
Im not joking with you. Dont y dumb with me. Just tell me the truth.
Whats the meaning ofing here this time?
Is it rted to my birth or is it your own idea? Are we rted in any way?
Just say it.
Su Luo was happy and distressed at the same time. However, he was still happy that his sister was willing to take the initiative to talk to him about this.
Her voice was neither loud nor soft, and the two people in the room could hear her.
Youre so smart, you should be able to guess a little. When the war just stopped, I sent people to investigate your background. Although its notprehensive, I feel that youre most likely my biological sister.
Im only three years older than you.
Back then, her maternal grandfather was a Divine General of the Northern Kingdom. The Emperor was afraid that his achievements would surpass his masters, so he added fuel to the fire and caused her maternal grandfathers family to be framed by others. Almost all her family members were killed. Consort Mother was furious. The once loving couple had be enemies overnight.
My mother almost killed the Emperor. After she was stopped, she wanted to escape from the pce no matter what. She originally brought me out, but I was stopped halfway. My mother vowed not to return to the pce. She was still pregnant with you at that time. With the help of the nanny, she escaped from the north to Xi Liang.
She didnt want you to go back to the dragons den and suffer, so she entrusted you to a farmers family she met on the way. She only hoped that you would grow up happily like a normal, carefree farmers child.
When I met my mother again, I was five.
She only told me that I have a younger sister. If we meet in the future, 1 must treat her well, just like how I treat my mother.
At that time, I was young and ignorant. I only remembered Imperial Mothers words, but two dayster, Imperial Mother passed away.
In a few days, I will be the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom.
As Su Luo spoke, he turned his head and saw that his back was trembling.
Even if Su Luo didnt exin in detail, MO Ruyue could guess that his mother must have made some deal with the Emperor of the Northern Kingdom, or used some method to exchange her death for her son to be the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom.
How can you be sure that it must be me? There are many people in the world who look alike.
MO Ruyue still wanted to struggle. She didnt want to take revenge for her mothers death.
However, things did not go as he wished.
There should be a birthmark on your back that matches the pattern of the jade 1 gave you, right?
You were born in the MO Family Vige 20 years ago, so all of this makes sense. The family that adopted you back then was called MO Shuisheng.
It was a pity that the nanny was no longer around and had gone to apany Mother.
Su Luo rubbed his face and faced MO Ruyue.
Too many coincidences are not coincidences, they are facts.
Consort Mother had also made a jade tablet for you back then. It was made in the Northern Kingdom, but she lost it when she gave birth to you. She thought that it was good to lose it, perhaps it was Gods will that didnt want you to return to that cold-blooded pce.
The birthmark on your back isnt a real birthmark. Its just a special technique passed down from your maternal grandfathers family to mark newborns.
Actually, Consort Mother still hoped that I would be able to find you one day.
Otherwise, she wouldnt have given you a birthmark.
Su Luo saw that his sister had not refuted him at all, so she must have a birthmark on her body. Moreover, his sister should have believed what he said.
He continued before MO Ruyue could ask any questions.
However, I hope that we dont acknowledge each other on the surface. Just pretend that we have nothing to do with each other.
MO Ruyue thought, l dont have to pretend.
If you really want to call me big brother, then call me big brother in private. Dont misunderstand, you should have guessed that I came to Xi Liang because I lost a battle.
Im not the only heir to the royal family of the Northern Kingdom. Its not safe for you to acknowledge me,
Seeing you like this, Consort Mother should be able to rest in peace.
Then you rest first. Ill go back and take a break first.
MO Ruyue stood up and left.
Alright, Ill go.
Dont feel any psychological burden.
But dont worry, as long as youre willing, when I get that position, Ill definitely bring you back to the Nortnd in glory and make you a real princess.
After MO Ruyue returned to her own courtyard, she happened to bump into Gu Ying who had just returned for lunch.
Gu Ying realized that something was wrong with MO Ruyue. Moreover, Su Luo didnt pester his wife to walk around the vige today.
Whats bothering you?
Is it because of Su Luo?!
Unexpectedly, MO Ruyue really nodded.
Therefore, MO Ruyue repeated what Su Luo had told her to Gu Ying word for word.
How did I be the Princess of the Nortnd who bears a blood feud? Gu Ying did not know how to persuade them about this.
If he wanted her not to go back to her original family, it didnt sound like she didnt want to.
She wanted to admit it, but she was so conflicted.
His heart ached for MO Ruyue.
Wife, dont make things difficult for yourself.
If you dont want to acknowledge your identity as a northerner, then be the Princess Ming Yue of Xi Liang, Gu Yings wife.
If you want to be the princess of the Northern Kingdom, you will still be my wife. I will definitely apany you. Even if it is a mountain of knives and a sea of fire, we are not afraid.
However, Gu Ying, who was hugging MO Ruyue, gritted his teeth. If not for the fact that the MO family had all died, he would definitely go and exterminate them!
I wonder if I can still find their bones
Gu Ying secretly thought to himself, but MO Ruyue naturally didnt know.
She was also struggling with herself in her heart..
Chapter 590 - 590: Coaxing a Sister
Chapter 590 - 590: Coaxing a Sister
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
She had been here for three years and had already epted the identity of MO Ruyue from Xi Liang.
Previously, she had always rejected the identity of the Nortnd. In the end, when she heard Su Luo casually tell her about his background, she felt ufortable.
Because it was different from what she had imagined. Previously, she thought that if they had found the original body earlier, the original body would not have lived so miserably. In the end, it would also have died a tragic death. But then again, if she didnt die, she might not be able to be reborn, so she actually had to bear all the karma of her original body.
Moreover, her original body was not abandoned. Instead, it was saved by her mother. Therefore, Su Luos mother could be considered her second mother. Her mother had died so tragically, so she had the responsibility to avenge her.
She didnt want to ask what kind of pce fights had happened in the pce in the Nortnd back then, nor how tragic her mothers family had been. However, the only person in the world who was still rted to her by blood was Su Luo. It seemed that she couldnt just watch Su Luo struggle alone. After sorting out her thoughts, MO Ruyue said, l want to help him.
Alright, then well help.
When Gu Ying heard what his wife said, he picked it up without thinking.
As long as it was his wifes decision, he would definitely be the most persistent.
After telling MO Ruyue the secret in her heart, Su Luo felt as if a huge rock had been lifted from his heart. It was rare for him to have a good sleep that night, but the next morning, his sister knocked on the door again.
No matter what kind of answer she gave him, he felt that he could ept it. However, when he opened the door and saw his sisters face, he still had a little anticipation in his heart.
Since you are here to do business with Xi Liang, you cant just stay in the house every day.
Tell me about the specialties of your northern country.
Are you trying to help me?
Su Luo sat up straight and looked at MO Ruyue seriously.
She didnt admit her identity, nor did she deny it. Instead, she asked him about his business?
Wasnt she trying to help him?
If you dont want to tell me, then forget it.
Tell me.
The most famous specialty of the Nortnd was the Tianshan Snow Lotus. However, the Tianshan Snow Lotus mostly grew on extremely high and extremely cold cliffs.
In fact, it could grow in other ces, but before it could grow, it was eaten by animals in the snow. In the end, it could only grow on cliffs, so the yield was very low. Moreover, many people died in order to pick a few Tianshan Snow Lotuses every year, so the Tianshan Snow Lotus was even more precious.
It would be great if I could see it.
MO Ruyue subconsciously said this, but Su Luo widened her eyes and looked at her.
Havent you seen the gift 1 gave you?
Isnt this too hurtful?
Cough cough Why would I go and look at those things? Besides, I dontck anything, so
Ill go take a look now.
As soon as MO Ruyue finished speaking, she brought Chun Hua to the storeroom and rummaged through the cabs to find the things that Su Luo had given her. She opened the boxes one by one. When she opened the twentieth box, she finally saw a crystal clear legendary snow lotus in the brocade box!
As soon as the box was opened, there was a strange fragrance. Just smelling it made one feel refreshed.
MO Ruyue had activated the ability to identify three herbs in a day, which she hadnt used for a long time.
Because she knew everyone in this area, she would not forget. It had been a long time since No. 50 had used that function. Later, when she went to the border, she also knew all the grass, trees, and trees there.
Tianshan Snow Lotus: It has the effects of clearing the channels and promoting blood cirction, warming the kidney and helping yang, dispelling wind and eliminating dampness. It also has the effects of anti-fatigue, anti-radiation, anti-inmmatory, painkiller, and enhancing the bodys immunity. It is often used to treat wind-cold-dampness arthralgia, rheumatism, irregr menstruation, cold pain in the lower abdomen, uterus and bleeding, and maleidity. Tianshan Snow Lotus also had a certain blood replenishing effect. It could treat dizziness, pale face, light menstruation, and other symptoms caused by various reasons. It could also promote blood cirction and remove blood stasis. It could treat womens menstrual pain and dark color.
This was a true Tianshan Snow Lotus that grew wild on the mountain. It was not an exaggeration to say that it could prolong ones life. It could simply be called a divine medicine.
Wow, what a big jade lotus. The carving is really exquisite. This leaf feels as thin as paper. How could this jade have such a fragrant fragrance? This fragrance is so good. I felt so much more energetic after smelling it.
Chun Hua sighed. She had never seen such a beautiful thing before. All the beautiful words she knew were used on this Tianshan Snow Lotus. Upon hearing Chun Huas words, MO Ruyue hurriedly closed the box.
This isnt jade, its real. Its called Tianshan Snow Lotus.
If this stalk was sold to someone who needed it, it wouldnt be considered expensive even if it was sold for ten thousand taels of gold.
Chun Hua almost couldnt hold back because of MO Ruyues words.
MO Ruyue looked at Chun Huas appearance and took the box from her hands.
Without MO Ruyues order, Chun Hua nervously closed the door and locked it once they were out of the storeroom. However, it was only after she had locked it for a while that MO Ruyue realized that she had taken out two more locks from the storeroom.
Actually, there were many valuable things in the storeroom, and this Tianshan Snow Lotus was not the only one.
Why hadnt he seen her this nervous before?
You cant tell anyone about the Princess.
He couldnt just give it away. It was something that could save his life at a critical moment.
Chun Hua felt that her princess was sometimes silly and generous. She had never seen the Tianshan Snow Lotus before, but she had heard of it.
That was simply a divine medicine that could bring the dead back to life!
She had to take good care of it and decided to check the lock of the storeroom three times a day from now on.
MO Ruyue couldnt be bothered with Chun Huas sudden nervousness. She first returned to her study and asked Chun Hua to grind the ink. She wrote a page on the paper, dried the words, and took it to look for Su Luo.
Is this reliable?
Su Luo held the ugly handwriting that MO Ruyue had written. However, this
was the first time her sister had written to him. He treated it like a treasure and read it carefully word by word. Unknowingly, he had also read the contents of the letter clearly.
His younger sister had grown up in Xi Liang and had never left MO Vige, then West River Vige. The furthest she had gone was the border, but he was sure that his younger sister had never seen the Tianshan Snow Lotus.
He suddenly knew how to nt it with just one look?
Do you still want to make your grand ne true?
If you wanted to, you could just follow the instructions to make money. How would you know if you didnt even try? Anyway, you wouldnt lose a piece of skin if you tried.
MO Ruyue was so angry that she wanted to ignore him. She had given him a solution, yet he still questioned her.
No, sister, dont be angry. Im just too surprised. How can you be so smart? Of course I believe you. Its all my fault.
Ill get someone to bring two more for you. What do you think? Su Luo racked his brains to think of a way to coax his sister.
Do you have enough manpower?
Before Su Luo could react, MO Ruyue continued, Since you want to get that position, you have to do it big and nimble.
Good!
I have a troop of Eagle Guards left behind by my maternal family..
Chapter 591 - 591: Tianshan Snow Lotus
Chapter 591 - 591: Tianshan Snow Lotus
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
You dont have to tell me where those people came from.
MO Ruyue stopped him.
Su Luo immediately sat up straight, Okay, I wont tell you their background. 1 just want to tell you that if you have anything to do with the jade pendant I gave you, you can order them around.
As long as you have something to use, just use it.
This big brother was really simple-minded. Did he just give such an important thing to someone who looked like his sister?
It was no wonder that he was bullied by others. As the crown prince of a country, he had to personally go to the battlefield to fight. This was extremely rare. She felt that it was probably because this elder brother was stupid.
However, she also remembered the jade pendant that the Empress Dowager had given her. She asked Chun Hua to bring both jade pendants over.
Then can I order this jade?
When Su Luo saw the jade pendant with the word moon engraved on it, he was so shocked that he couldnt speak. She took the two jade pendants and looked at them carefully.
After a while, she stammered, You, you, you were here long ago. Did you already know when I gave you the jade pendant?
Or did you already know who you were earlier?
You are thinking too much. This is something that the Empress Dowager of
Xi Liang picked up more than twenty years ago and left behind by a benefactor who saved her. If I am not wrong, that person should be Mother.
Once, the Empress saw the birthmark on my back and suspected my identity. They even went to investigate until the war between the two countries ended and I returned. The Empress Dowager felt that I was my mothers child, so she gave this jade pendant to me. Are they good to you?
Very good!
Su Luo then asked the Empress Dowager how well she treated MO Ruyue. She was very touched after hearing MO Ruyues exnation.
If I have the chance, I must thank the Empress Dowager and the Empress.
Alright, lets get down to business. Tell me if this jade pendant can instruct those people.
Su Luo returned the jade pendant to MO Ruyue!
Yes.
This was the token used by her maternal grandfathers family tomand the Eagle Guards.
Of course, it was useless for others to take it. They had to check the birthmark on the back.
The birthmark and jade pendant were indispensable, so they were called Eagle Guards.
Then you should still keep this piece for yourself.
Su Luo didnt refuse anymore. He was very d to have met his sister. His sisters jade pendant had the word Yue on it. It was the name that Consort Mother had given her before she gave birth to his sister. MO Ruyue had coincidentally been called MO Ruyue. This was probably the will of heaven.
The siblings went back to their previous conversation. You want revenge too, right? You want to get that position. Then, do you have any people in the pce? If you want to do something in the pce, is it convenient?
Su Luo nodded.
Since you want to do this, then go all out and do something big. Anyway, you are now in Xi Liang. If anything happens, the Northern Emperor will not be able to do anything to you.
Su Luo nodded again. His eyes were bright and gentle as he looked at his younger sister, who was emitting light all over. This was his younger sister, his biological younger sister. How nice!
When MO Ruyue talked to Su Luo about this again, she asked Chun Hua to call Gu Ying over. They were husband and wife, and she didnt want to hide these things from Gu Ying.
Su Luo saw that his sister had a good rtionship with Gu Ying. The dissatisfaction he had when he saw Gu Ying gradually faded. What could she do? After all, his sister liked this person.
Everything in the past was in the past. Now, they had to n for the future.
After the three of them finished their discussion, MO Ruyue decided that with Ji Hongs help, their task would be easier.
The whole family was together during the new year, happily celebrating the new year.
Su Luo also felt the atmosphere of the new year. This was something he had never felt since his mother died. On the night of New Years Eve, he insisted on keeping vigil with Gu Ying until the morning of New Years Day. He was drunk and carried back to rest by the guards.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying could not rest yet. They had to enter the pce to pay their respects.
Once she entered the pce, MO Ruyue was naturally sent to the harem by the Empress Dowager and the Empress.
The Empress Dowager and the Empress looked at MO Ruyue with gossipy expressions as soon as they saw her, but they didnt ask anything.
They didnt need to ask anything. MO Ruyue could already tell from their faces that they had reunited with their brother.
The two people in front of her treated her like family. She did not intend to hide it from them. Besides, she could not hide it from them.
Moreover, the Empress Dowager was someone who knew about it back then, so she told the Empress Dowager and the Empress what Su Luo had told her. She was still hoping that these two people would help her bitter elder brother seize the throne after hearing it.
Now that he couldnt take the throne, he couldnt take revenge, and he would lose his life, so he might as well rebel!
It would definitely be extremely difficult for them to rely on themselves for the throne. If they had the help of the Emperor and Empress Dowager, the chances would at least increase by 50%.
The Empress Dowager and the Empress were filled with righteous indignation when they heard this. This situation was too simr to their family. However, their family was just like MO Ruyues maternal family. It was a pity that MO Ruyues maternal family was not as lucky as their family.
Ruyue, dont worry. Ill definitely speak up for you on your Imperial Brothers side. Hell definitely agree.
Tell your brother toe over when he has time for this widow to take a good look. Last time, I was in a hurry and couldnt even speak to him.
MO Ruyue knew that the Empress Dowager was still thinking about how her mother had saved her.
Alright, let him see Mother.
MO Ruyue asked Chun Hua to bring over two brocade boxes from the gifts she had brought.
This is what Big Brother asked me to bring to Mother and Sister.
When the Empress Dowager and Empress saw the Tianshan Snow Lotus in the brocade box, they smiled.
This child is so thoughtful.
Aijia is too old to use this, so Ruyue should use it herself. This is a rare good thing.
When the Empress Dowager learned that MO Ruyue was the daughter of her savior, she hated herself for knowing her toote.
Everyone knew that the Tianshan Snow Lotus was a good thing. Every year, the pce could only get one stalk of it as tribute from the Nortnd.
He is my brother. Do you think he wont give it to me?
Besides, this is his present to you. Just take it.
MO Ruyue really didnt expect the Empress Dowager to give her something else.
Alright, Mother, listen to your sister.
Even if we want to give her something, we cant give her anything.
Now that the Crown Prince of the Northern Kingdom cant casually appear in the pce, its safe with my sister. You can rest assured and keep it.
The Empress did not treat MO Ruyue as an outsider. She needed the Tianshan Snow Lotus now. She had suffered a great loss when she gave birth to Lin Er. She had not recovered much now, and it was not even a little bit worse than before.
The scar on his stomach had always been a sore spot. With the Tianshan Snow
Lotus as the medicine primer, the effect of the scar removal cream was even better.
If she didnt cheer up, the girls in the harem would think that she was doted on because of her son!
Sister, 1 wont stand on ceremony with you.
Youre treating me as an outsider.
MO Ruyue knew that she had always wanted to get rid of that scar. Now that she had this, it would definitely work. Otherwise, she wouldnt have specially brought the Tianshan Snow Lotus here today.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were already getting dark by the time they arrived, so they started the pce banquet after discussing the important matters.
After the banquet, Gu Ying and MO Ruyue were naturally left behind to discuss
Su Luos matter with Ji Hong.
In the eyes of the other officials, this was incredible. With General Xue i s victorious return, the couple was even more highly regarded by the royal family.
They couldnt bepared!
Chapter 592 - 592: Happy New Year
Chapter 592 - 592: Happy New Year
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue had just told Ji Hong about her rtionship with Su Luo when the Empress Dowager pulled the Emperors son aside and told him about her experience back then.
Im telling you, you have to help. Its not that Mother is interfering with the government. Just remember that Consort Ruyue saved your mothers life back then, and Ruyue has saved your family of three many times.
Ji Hong replied, Why hasnt he expressed his stance yet? If he wasnt a few years older than MO Ruyue, he would have thought that he might have swapped identities with MO Ruyue.
After staying in the pce for two days, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying went out for another four days. During these four days, Su Luo had be very familiar with the people in the vige.
When MO Ruyue returned home, there were a few servants guarding the house, but the few masters were not around. She asked around and said that they were having dinner at Mrs. Wangs house.
Not only did Su Luo go, but he also brought his children with her.
This year, because they had to go to the pce to discuss serious matters, they did not bring any children with them when they went to the pce to worship.
Granny Rong saw that the princess husband had returned and was very happy to prepare food and drink for the two of them.
Before they could finish lunch, Su Luo came back with Si Bao, Tang Tang, and
Qin Qingyan.
Sister, youre back. Why didnt you ask someone to call me?
MO Ruyue looked at Su Luffs face. She was ming them first?
Tang Tang and Si Bao were held by Su Luo in each hand. When the two children saw MO Ruyue, they immediately let go of Su Luffs hand and ran towards her. Mother, Mother
Wheres your aunt?
Nio Ruyue didnt see Qin Qingshuang. She sounded like she was asking Tang Tang, but in fact, she was asking Su Luo and Qin Qingyan.
Ever since Gu Ying opened the Wenwu Institute, Qin Qingyan had never been to the private school in town, so he didnte backte like before.
After MO Ruyue and Gu Ying got married, the whole family moved into the princess manor. This was MO Ruyues own request. After all, she was worried about letting the two children live alone in the vige, even if there was someone to serve them.
Little Aunt went to Eldest Aunts house.
MO Ruyue thought about it and knew without asking. It might be because of Su Luo. After all, Qin Qingshuang was considered a youngdy now. The few people in the family still did not know the true rtionship between Su Luo and her.
Sister-inw, why dont I go and call Sister back?
Qin Qingyan knew that his brothers and sisters-inw were back, so he didnt have to avoid them anymore.
Its alreadyte. Let her stay at your sisters ce for another night. It wont be toote toe back tomorrow morning.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying had almost finished their meal. They wanted to talk to the children and share the gifts that their Imperial Uncle had brought back from the capital. The children were overjoyed.
Si Bao and Tang Tang were still growing. During the day, they had to study and y crazily. At night, after eating and drinking to their hearts content, their eyelids started to fight.
He asked Qiu Shi and Dong Yu to help the two children sleep.
Qin Qingyan didnt need anyone to serve him. He tidied himself up and went to bed. The four children didnt live in the same courtyard as MO Ruyue.
However, the four children lived in the same courtyard. Because the children were still young, they were afraid that they would be afraid to live alone in the courtyard.
Im going to rest too. You guys should rest early too.
Su Luo saw that the children had all left. He felt that he was a big lightbulb here. It was true that he was thick-skinned, but he wasnt that thick-skinned.
You guys have been traveling for a few days. You should rest well. Ill go rest too.
Big Brother, dont go yet.
Sister, are you finally willing to call me big brother?
MO Ruyue looked at Su Luos nervous and happy expression and wanted to jump up and down. After thinking about it, it seemed that she had not called him big brother since the two of them had reunited.
Did calling him big brother make him so happy?
Su Luo didnt act like a big brother at all. Instead, she acted like a little brother who stuck to his sister. She obediently sat down beside MO Ruyue.
Gu Ying thought, If I didnt know that hes my wifes biological brother, I would have thought that he had some ulterior motives.
Dont you want to know how our discussion with the Emperor went in the pce?
How did it go?
If Ji Hong was willing to help him, it would be on ount of his sister. If he wasnt willing, it would be his duty.
Su Luo wasnt looking forward to it, because without expectation, there would be no disappointment. His mentality was very stable.
The Emperor is naturally willing to help you. The Empress Dowager and the empress are both willing.
But you have to make arrangements on your side first
The three of them had the same idea. They were afraid that the walls had ears, so they moved closer and spoke softly.
The husband and wife told Su Luo what they had talked about with the Emperor and the others in the pce. MO Ruyue also gave Su Luo a few more ideas.
In short, ording to MO Ruyue, the Northern Kingdom had just finished their war with Xi Liang. Although there were no casualties on both sides, the war had just stopped and they were in the middle of peace talks. They would not be so vignt.
Moreover, at this moment, Su Luo had been jointly chased to Xi Liang by those princes. If Su Luo did anything now, it would definitely be difficult for the Nortnd to detect it.
Sister, why dont you train a military advisor for me in the future?
This sister was too capable. Su Luo felt that she could win just by lying down.
l dont have that ability.
If you have any problems, Ill give you some ideas. Thats all. Dont think too much.
She didnt want to teach anyone anymore. She hadnt even gotten rid of the dozens or hundreds of people she had taught. She didnt want to train any more military strategists.
Besides, she really didnt like the term military strategy.
Hehe, of course I cant bear to see you work so hard. I was just casually saying it to show your intelligence.
Gu Ying looked at this scheming brother-inw in front of him and learned another way to praise people.
The three of them talked untilte at night.
The next day, she slept until the end of the morning (9 AM). MO Ruyue saw that it was a littlete, so she hurriedly packed up and rushed to town to pay her Master a New Years visit.
Whenever MO Ruyue went to visit Doctor Qin, she would bring the four children along.
When the family arrived, everyone who was originally sitting in the house came out to wee them.
Qin Rouwan pulled Tang Tang with one hand and Qin Qingshuang with the other. Qin Qingyan and Si Bao naturally went to Qin Haoyan and Qin Haoyu.
However, before the children went to y, they had to pay a New Years visit.
Tang Tang wishes Grandfather a happy new year and wishes Grandfather a long and healthy life! All your wishese true!
Tang Tang gave her aunt a wish for her to be younger and more beautiful!
Tang Tang wishes her two brothers a happy new year and wishes them to be extremely intelligent! Youre sessful in your studies!
Hahahaha, good, good, good!
Tang Tangs words came out of her mouth, and the Qin familyughed.
After Tang Tang paid her New Years greetings, it was Si Baos turn, followed by Qin Qingshuang and Qin Qingyans turn to MO Ruyue and Gu Ying.
The servant maids and servants were very perceptive as they served tea and snacks, as well as various fruits and snacks. They were all the childrens and
MO Ruyues favorites, and even Gu Yings favorites. It was obvious that they had prepared everything meticulously..
Chapter 593 - 593: Seafood
Chapter 593 - 593: Seafood
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Younger Sister, I heard that the person who came to your house is from the Nortnd?
Why isnt he staying in the pce? Why is he staying here instead? Does he have any ulterior motives? You have to be careful.
Yes, if theres anything, you must tell us.
Doctor Qin and the others had never asked who Su Luo was, but when they saw that Su Luo had actually stayed in the princess manor until the new year and still hadnt left after the new year, they had no choice but to worry and ask.
But why do I feel that that person looks a little like you?
l came here today to tell you about him.
Therefore, MO Ruyue told him about her rtionship with Su Luo.
Doctor Qin and Qin Rouwan listened as if they were reading from a book. However, when they thought about their simr faces, they felt that there was nothing impossible about it.
Good child, youve suffered.
The next time he came to his masters ce, he should bring him along.
In Doctor Qins opinion, although Su Luo was the crown prince of the northern kingdom, he had lived a life of swords and seas of fire.
Before he saw MO Ruyue, his other brothers were like wolves and tigers who only wanted his life. His father was also like a cold-blooded animal, watching his sons fight to the death.
In his opinion, he simply could not be called a father. The royal family was indeed the most heartless.
He felt his heart ache for her.
Alright, then Ill bring Big Brother to meet Master and Sister next time.
They had originally thought that it would be better for Su Luo not to run around in West River Vige. When she came to her masters house and talked to them for a while, another idea suddenly came to her mind.
Su Luos face couldnt be casually moved around, but she could change her face. This wasnt difficult for her at all.
While the whole family was chatting happily, someone came to the door. It was MO Ruyue who came to Doctor Qins ce today, and the others were not invited and should not havee. This was because the Qin Family had specially set aside this day to wee MO Ruyues family.
But you cant chase them away even if theye.
The person who came was none other than MO Ruyue, whom they all knew. It was Boss Yu.
Boss Yu saw that everyone in the courtyard was looking at him as soon as he arrived. He endured the huge pressure and braced himself to be embarrassed.
Upon seeing MO Ruyue, he hurriedly greeted her, Greetings, Princess
Big Brother Yu, you dont have to be so polite.
Boss Yu was interrupted by MO Ruyue before he could finish his question. Although they hadnt spent much time together in the past two years, they were still very close friends. Moreover, Boss Yu had been chasing after Qin
Rouwan.
Actually, both Doctor Qin and MO Ruyue thought that Boss Yu was quite suitable for Qin Rouwan. However, Qin Rouwan felt that she was not worthy of him and had never agreed. Otherwise, she would probably have a baby by now.
Someone sent me a big basket of fresh food from the beach. This thing has to be eaten alive to be delicious. It cant be eaten dead, so I quickly sent it over.
As he spoke, the manservant behind him opened the lid of the basket he had brought. MO Ruyue took a look and thought, Good heavens, isnt this a big basket of seafood?
Shrimps, crabs, abalones, octopuses, and more.
Then you came at the right time. Did you know that we wereing, so you specially chose to send it now? Thank you so much!
It was obvious that Boss Yu wanted to give this good thing to his favorite person.
MO Ruyue looked at the basket of seafood and confirmed that almost all of them were alive. Of course, seafood was only delicious when they were alive.
She was very curious about what method the deliveryman had used to bring the seafood to this ce alive.
Gu Ying immediately flipped his hands and almost got pinched by a crab.
He had never seen these things alive, but he had heard of them, so he was more curious.
It is said that these things can only be salvaged from the sea. Brother Yu is amazing!
l just happened to have a friend who got these things and used some special methods to send them to me.
It probably took a lot of manpower and resources to send this seafood over. It had to arrive at the fastest time and keep the seafood alive. It was estimated that only someone with good legs could do it.
This Boss Yu really spared no effort to pursue his wife. Good job!
Why do these things look so scary? How do I eat them?
Can those shells and thorns be eaten?
Qin Rouwan also knew that Boss Yu had specially sent seafood over, so she felt quite sweet in her heart.
However, looking at those strange-looking things, she was really worried that they could be eaten.
Yes, yes. You can eat it after boiling it. It has a different taste.
The person who sent it to him said that it could be eaten after being boiled.
Why dont we let our Chun Hua cook together? My Chun Hua is also very good at cooking.
l think we should just order a portion of these as per normal. The taste shouldnt be bad. We cant waste them if they send them from afar, right? Moreover, these things cant be stored. Didnt Brother Yu just say that they cant be eaten even if they die?
Since there were so many of them, he would just give it a try. What if it was steamed, fried, and fried?
Listen to the Princess. Actually, no one knows the exact way to eat it.
When Chun Hua went to the kitchen, MO Ruyue followed. If these things hadnt appeared now, she would have forgotten about the delicious seafood. Now, just the smell of the sea made her drool.
MO Ruyue used her identity as a doctor to silently instruct the people in the kitchen to deal with what needed to be dealt with. The rest were edible.
A few pots in the kitchen started to fire at the same time. Not long after, the fragrance of steaming, boiling, frying and frying came out. Even the few people chatting in the front yard could smell it.
After a while, the fragrance was not satisfied with just staying in the Qin familys courtyard. It floated to the neighboring houses with the help of the wind.
In the courtyards, what was that smell? Why is it so fragrant!
The maidservants in the Qin familys courtyard came and went one after another, carrying fresh seafood that had juste out of the oven in their hands. There were steamed, fried, stir-fried, and cooked dishes.
The closer they got to the dining room, the stronger the fragrance became.
The seafood was prepared ording to MO Ruyues instructions, so there was no reason for it to taste bad.
Brother Yu, which friend of yours is so capable to send you this seafood? Can you tell me where this seafood came from?
MO Ruyue was so full that she couldnt eat anymore. However, she felt that she hadnt eaten enough and wanted to eat more. This had evoked her long-hidden seafood memories. It would be very difficult for her to quit in a short period of time.
Oh, 1 have a friend from the north. If the Princess likes it, I can ask him to get it again.
Boss Yu felt that he could do this. He had also seen that the Princess really liked to eat. Moreover, the dishes on this table were much more delicious than what the person had told him. Indeed, he felt that he wanted to eat this every day.
MO Ruyue suddenly had an idea when she heard about the north. Wasnt her brother from the north?
Thats right, why didnt she think that the extremely cold ce in the north also had a boundless sea?
The colder the ce, the more delicious the seafood was!
What was there to worry about? There was no way to earn money!
Thinking of this, MO Ruyue couldnt sit still for a moment. She called her family over, bid farewell to Doctor Qin, and hurried back to West River Vige.
Of course, he took Boss Yu with him when he left.
Su Luo didnt go to the vige today. He sat in the garden of the princess manor, sunbathing, eating melon seeds, and stroking the deer..
Chapter 594 - 594: A Good Man
Chapter 594 - 594: A Good Man
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Woof woof woof! Woof woof woof!
Suddenly, Lafu, who was ying in the courtyard, pushed aside the other dogs and ran out of the princesss manor.
Seeing this, the deer also stood up. Even the tender grass in Su Luos hand was no longer fragrant.
The masters are back, who still wants to eat grass!
At first, Su Luo didnt understand what was going on with these dogs. Even the sika deer ran after them. When MO Ruyue and the others entered the courtyard, the dogs and sika deer rushed into the courtyard again, kicking up a cloud of dust.
Shouldnt you be back after dinner? Did he juste back from lunch? Isnt it because of you?
By the way. how far is it from the sea?
Is it convenient for you to go to the beach?
Do you guys eat seafood?
Why do you want to eat seafood? Ill get someone to prepare it for you.
If you want to eat something else, I might not be able to get it for you. If you want to eat seafood, you can have as much as you want.
Although he was bragging, he could still get some food for MO Ruyue.
Then why didnt you mention seafood when I asked you about the local specialties?
He thought that only the local specialties onnd were considered local specialties.
Sister, dont be angry. Its all my fault. Ill get someone to get you some seafood to eat.
Proactively admitting his mistakes was Su Luos goal for his sister.
Dont be silly. This is Boss Yu. We can be considered business partners. We were lucky enough to eat a basket of seafood he brought for lunch today.
When Boss Yu saw Su Luos appearance and how MO Ruyue had called her big brother, he had a lot of questions in his heart. However, he wouldnt ask too many questions. At most, he would ask Qin Rouwan in private.
Hearing MO Ruyue introduce herself to Su Luo, she revealed the most business-like smile and introduced herself.
l am Yu Hongsheng. It is a pleasure to meet you, Young Master!
Su Luo, nice to meet you!
Boss Yu told Su Luo about the friend who gave him seafood. Su Luffs eyes lit up. He knew what his sister was thinking.
He believed that his sister had brought him back.
He was extremely touched. Even when his younger sister went out to pay her respects, she would always think of him, her elder brother, and think of ways for him.
If he didnt behave himself, he wouldnt be worthy of being her big brother!
MO Ruyue didnt care about how Su Luo and Boss Yu discussed how to transport the seafood over. She went to prepare the cosmetics for Su Luos trip.
The next day, the princess manor was very lively. Everyone seemed to have made an appointment today and all came.
Xiao Shuang, follow Granny Rong and help Sister-inw greet the guests.
There are too many people today.
MO Ruyue had her reasons for ordering Qin Qingshuang to do this. Qin Qingshuang was already eleven years old this year, and she was considered a youngdy here. Many families had already started to arrange marriage for girls of her age. She felt that there was no need to be so anxious, but she had to pay attention to the ways of the world. She had to meet more people and build a small social circle. After all, she had to understand these things when she went to her inws family in the future.
Because there were many people today, and there were both men and women, there were male and female seats in the front and back courtyards. The front courtyard was for the men, and the backyard was for the women.
Alright, Sister-inw. Dont worry about it. Ill definitely take care of the guests at home with Granny Rong.
Qin Qingshuang promised MO Ruyue with a smile.
Sister, I think your sister-inw is quite capable. Shes beautiful and energetic. I wonder if shes said anything about her inws?
The county magistrates wife, no, she should be the magistrates wife now. It seemed that she wanted to introduce Qin Qingshuang to her inws.
The original County Magistrate Wu had been promoted to the position of Prefect because of MO Ruyue. Moreover, he had been promoted by skipping grades. It was simply enviable.
County Magistrate Wu r s family was even more grateful to MO Ruyue and regarded her as the familys God of Wealth.
Shes only eleven years old after the new year. I dont want to arrange a marriage for her so early. If its possible in the future, I still hope that she can find someone she likes.
Ill just give her a chance, I dont want to make decisions for her on this matter.
The magistrates wife was in disbelief when she heard MO Ruyues words.
Youre too open-minded as a sister-inw! No wonder the children like you so much. Really? You can be so open-minded too.
Sister,e over here. I have something to tell you.
Qin Rouwan waited for an entire morning, but MO Ruyue was still not free.
She couldnt wait any longer, so she might as well call her directly. She had something important to tell her.
When she went to the Qin familys house yesterday, they wanted to tell her about it. However, Yu Hongsheng had sent a big basket of seafood over, disrupting all their ns. The main thing was that he didnt have the time to tell MO Ruyue about the important matter.
What is it?
Qin Rouwan pulled MO Ruyue into the room, closed the door, and asked the maidservant to stand guard at the door.
I wanted to tell you about this yesterday, but you left in a hurry, so Im telling you now.
Tell me.
If you have anything to say, just say it.
On the twenty-second day of the first lunar month, Im going to get married to Yu Hongsheng.
What? Is it that sudden?
Qin Rouwan blushed at MO Ruyues words. Isnt it because were not young anymore?!
Just tell me if youreing or not!
Come,e,e. Thats a good thing. Of course Ille!
If you ask me, you and Big Brother Yu should have gotten married long ago.
Now, your child can even run on the ground.
Knowing that Qin Rouwan and Boss Yu were going to get married, MO Ruyue felt happier than if she was getting married herself.
What nonsense are you talking about?
He has a child, and I have a child too. Neither of us ns to have another child.
People were often like this. When talking about others, they would say whatever they thought of. When it was their turn, they would be a little shy.
Dont make a conclusion so early. If you marry Brother Yu, dont you want to have a child of your own?
Youre still talking about me. Youve been married to Gu Ying for so long. Why dont you want a child?
You should have a child of your own.
Qin Rouwan became anxious and turned to MO Ruyue.
Alright, alright, were the boss, not the second.
Where will you live after you get married?
Qin Rouwan didnt me MO Ruyue for being so nosy. It would be strange if she didnt ask such questions given their rtionship.
Her familys situation was different from others. She had never wanted to get married before because her father had two sons.
After Yu Hongsheng learned that this was the main reason why Qin Rouwan was unwilling to get married, he directly bought the courtyard next to Doctor
Qins house.
You left in a hurry that day and didnt have time to tell you about these things. You didnt notice either.
He bought the courtyard next door and opened a small door on the wall that connected to my fathers side. The two houses can be connected directly. Otherwise, I wouldnt have agreed so easily.
MO Ruyues eyes widened upon hearing this. What a good man. In order to marry a wife, he had even arranged a ce for his wife to stay.
This way, she could take care of her master and her master could continue to live with her daughters and grandchildren. This was the best.
Then I say, if you want to hold Brother Yu tightly, you have to give birth to a child for him. Dont worry about a daughter or son.
As the saying goes, children are the bridge between husband and wife. Halfway through, a husband and wife need this bridge to support them. Of course, there are exceptions..
Chapter 595 - 595: Must Be Alive
Chapter 595 - 595: Must Be Alive
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
How could Qin Rouwan not know this? However, it had been so many years. It wasnt that Zhou Zhengqing didnt touch her when she was in the Zhou family. Forget it, she didnt want to think about it anymore.
MO Ruyue also recalled the time when she had first met Qin Rouwan. She had even checked Qin Rouwans pulse. At that time, she had been troubled because Qin Rouwan wanted to have another child.
Thinking of this, MO Ruyue grabbed Qin Rouwans hand and took her pulse.
Your qi and blood are smooth and your pulse is healthy. Sister, you can definitely do it!
Worry about yourself.
Qin Rouwan shyly pped her hand away. She hadnt even married Yu Hongsheng yet, and she was already saying such nonsense. If others heard it, they would die of embarrassment.
Hahaha, I wont say it anymore.
MO Ruyue saw that Qin Rouwan was going to hit her if she continued talking, so she quickly stopped. There were many people here today, so the two of them went to entertain the guests after they finished their business.
Brother Xue, you also know that I have a son who is eleven this year. The private school in town will be reopening soon. There are also Uncle Qins two grandsons. We have discussed and want the three of them to study at your Civil and Martial Arts Academy.
Yu Hongsheng had also told Guying about his wedding with Qin Rouwan on the 22nd of the first lunar month. If it was someone elses family, they wouldnt have announced it so formally to everyone. They could have just told one of the representatives of that family. However, this family had a special rtionship with them, so they had to invite everyone.
Why not? I wee you!
Ive never seen Brother Yu l s children before. As the saying goes, a tiger father will not have a dog son. Uncle Qins two grandsons are very smart. Who knows, I might have to rely on the three of them in the future to support my Civil and Martial Arts Academy.
Hahaha, thank you for your good words, Brother Xue. As long as youre not afraid of them embarrassing you in the future, thats fine.
Then Ill have to trouble Brother Xue to help educate those three frisky monkeys.
Who didnt like beautiful words? Besides, although Gu Ying and the others had not known each other for long, they were not strangers to each others temperaments. They could still tell the truth from the words.
Everyone was chatting happily with each other, and it felt like it was time for the banquet to begin soon.
The children who were making a ruckus outside were also called back.
A group of ten-year-olds, such as Qin Haoyu, Wang Fugui, Qin Qingyan, and the others, came back in droves. When they arrived at the door, they all restrained their temperaments and revealed the feeling of elegant young men.
Each of these children had their own good points, each of them was handsome and dignified, but the eyes of those aunties and grandmothers who had girls at home shone with golden light.
Those young men were apanied by a group of five to six-year-olds and even two to three-year-olds who had just learned how to walk. When they crossed the threshold, they would hug, carry, or pull them, showing the demeanor of brothers, which made those aunties and grandmothers even more satisfied.
Not only were they asking each other about the families of the children, but Si Bao and Tang Tang were the two most mischievous children. Of course, Si Bao was the one who was led astray by Tang Tang.
At the age of five, six, or seven, she was not afraid of being embarrassed or what the adults said. Girls at this age did not need to be polite.
The two children rushed into the courtyard and bumped into someone. They couldnt stop in time and fell back. The person quickly reached out and grabbed the two children in each hand to stand them up. There are many people today. Be careful when you walk.
Uncle?
Uncle, why are you so different today?
After Tang Tang finished speaking, Si Bao nodded. The two little kids raised their heads and looked at Su Luo with puzzled expressions.
Shh Tang Tang, Si Bao, you must help Uncle keep this a secret. You cant let others know that Uncle has changed today. Otherwise, Uncle wont be able to stay here!
Su Luo exined to the two children in a low voice.
When the two little fellows heard this, they quickly looked around. Seeing that no one was paying attention to them, they patted their little chests and heaved a sigh of relief.
Fortunately, no one saw it.
They didnt want their uncle to leave. Uncle was good to them and also good to their mother.
Uncle said that Mother only had one brother left. She didnt have any other brothers or sisters. Her parents were gone too. It wasnt easy for her toe here. How could she let him go again?
Therefore, all the guests who came today thought that Su Luo was like this.
Su Luffs face had long been tampered with by MO Ruyue.
The current Su Luo was still somewhat simr to the one from before, but the simrities with MO Ruyue had already disappeared.
The few people in the family who knew Su Luo were also very strange when they saw his change in appearance. However, there were especially many people who came today, and Su Luos identity was special. No one would ask, even if they knew something in their hearts.
Su Luo was also very satisfied with his current appearance. This way, he could go wherever he wanted openly.
It was even possible for him to return to the Nortnd with this appearance.
Su Luo thought about how he had just reunited with his sister not long ago.
During this period of time, his sister had been busy running things for him. He hadnt spent enough time with his sister, and he didnt want to go back so soon.
He liked this ce more and more. He didnt even want to leave, at least for now.
He would first follow the ideas that his sister gave him and continue step by step. It wouldnt be toote to go back after he had subtly prepared everything over there.
After all, he was not alone now. He still had his sister.
It was night. After a busy day, MO Ruyue and the others had already gone to bed early. Only Su Luos room was still lit by a bean-sized candle.
At this moment, there was a person dressed in ck kneeling in front of Su Luo. If one looked carefully, there were dark patterns on the cor of this person in ck. It was a ck eagle soaring like the jade pendant.
This subordinate greets Master and asks for Masters instructions.
Go get some fish and prawns from the sea. I want them alive. Oh right, and that crab thats as big as a washbasin. Hmm, Ill also try to pick the fish and prawns that are bigger than a te.
Also, remember to keep them alive.
You may leave.
Yes.
The Eagle Guard responded quite straightforwardly, but he was a little troubled. Why did his master suddenly want to eat seafood?
As far as he knew, Master didnt like to eat those things, but now that Master wanted them, he could only think of ways to get them.
It was just that it was a little difficult to survive. The distance here was a little far, but it was not impossible. He could only go to the sea personally. Otherwise, he was afraid that he would not make it in time.
Because Master didnt say how many days it would take to send it back, it meant that it would be sent back as soon as possible.
After the Eagle Guards left, Su Luo turned off the lights andy on the bed with a smile on his face. He thought about how happy his sister would be when she saw the seafood he had asked the Eagle Guards to bring.
Even his sister was very interested in the finger-sized prawns that Boss Yu had sent over. She would definitely be very happy if he asked the Eagle Guards to bring over prawns that could not even fit on a te!
Half a monthter, the vigers of West River Vige had already begun to cultivate the first batch of seedlings. However, this year, not only the vigers of West River Vige and the vigers of the nearby viges hade to learn to cultivate together, but there were also other local officials sent by the Emperor.
The Emperor was preparing to nt two crops of rice every year in the entire Xi Liang Country, just like Xi He Vige.
Firstly, it could increase the food production of the Xi Liang Country. Secondly, one of the conditions he had promised to help Sullo was to sell him enough food.
Of course, rice was only one of the grains. After that, there were sweet potatoes, corn, and other grains..
Chapter 596 - 596: Drink the Fine Wine
Chapter 596 - 596: Drink the Fine Wine
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Because there were many people, MO Ruyue was afraid that the old vige chief and Wang Tiezhu would not be able to control the situation. So, she personally came to the nursery day and called the vige veterans to personally demonstrate with them to the parents and officials from other ces. She also asked them to follow the steps to personally grow the seedlings.
Only by doing everything personally could one remember the specific steps more deeply.
Who would dare to disobey Princess Ming Yue?
As a result, those local magistrates who were originally very unhappy and wanted to put on airs were all as obedient as quails.
The magistrate was already so obedient, the other county magistrates didnt even dare to let out a fart. They were doing even better than the magistrate, but they still had to take care of the magistrates mentality and be careful not to surpass them. If Princess Ming Yue came to watch the resultster, the magistrate and the others wouldnt have a way out. They wouldnt have a good ending when they went back.
MO Ruyue naturally noticed the people below the stage trying to suppress their anger, but she didnt say anything and allowed them to do as they pleased.
When MO Ruyue was done, the people below also slowed down. She went down to check the results one by one. After looking around, she returned to the original center position.
The prefect, magistrate, and other officials thought that they had all passed when they saw MO Ruyue looking around without saying anything. They were feeling pleased with themselves, but MO Ruyue pointed to the few people who were most pleased with themselves.
You guys, give me another chance, If you still cant learn it, change it to someone who can.
Also, dont waste any of my food!
MO Ruyuesst sentence was very serious. It was obvious that the content of this sentence was the most important.
Also, you said it was you.
MO Ruyue pointed at the county magistrate with small eyes, dark skin, and a crooked hat.
You clearly did a good job previously, but at the end, you deliberately pretended that you didnt know how to do it. What do you mean?
Could it be that the people of your county have a grudge against you, and would rather they starve to death than bring this method back?
The county magistrate knelt down and kowtowed.
Princess, please spare my life. This humble official is stupid. Princess, please give this humble official another chance. This humble official will definitely do well this time!
When did I say I wanted your life?
Besides, what use do I have for your life?
This kind of person didnt want to offend his superior, but he also wanted to get things done. In the end, he couldnt do anything well.
She had given him a warning and an opportunity, so it was up to him to decide what to do.
She couldnt be bothered to look at this person again and pointed at another magistrate.
If you feel that as the Prefect of a prefecture, it is beneath you to do these things, then please go back.
You shouldnt havee.
The magistrate didnt expect that he would be involved in this matter. However, Princess Ming Yue didnt give him any face and criticized him in front of so many people. At this moment, he was embarrassed and angry, and at the same time, he felt very aggrieved.
It was said that this Princess Ming Yue was very favored by the Emperor and generally could not be offended.
MO Ruyue didnt give the magistrate a chance to speak at all. She pointed at a few others who didnt seem to be sincere when they were on the stage. She didnt like them.
And you, you, you. To think that all of you are prefects and local officials. I dont even understand how all of you became officials.
When those people heard MO Ruyues words, they were so frightened that their foreheads were sweating and their legs were weak. Immediately, the county magistrates all knelt down, and two of the county magistrates also knelt down.
All of you, get up. Theres no need to kneel to me.
I only want to ask you, are you able to be the Prefect and Magistrate because you have the citizens of a prefecture and a county under your jurisdiction?
If there were no civilians and only an empty city, would there be any meaning even if you were to be a first-grade official?
Who do you care? To be a first-grade official for the air?
The people are the foundation of the country, and food is the most important thing for the people. What you have to do now is to think about what to do!
After lecturing them, MO Ruyue was toozy to look at them anymore. She went back and asked Chun Hua to record down the names of the people she had just called out in a small notebook. These were to be handed over to Ji Hong. The ces where these officials stayed would be paid special attention in the future.
After MO Ruyue left, the prefectures and county magistrate did not need anyone else to say anything. Instead, they asked the old vige chief to teach them again.
The vigers were all muttering in their hearts. It turned out that these high-ranking officials were just like normal people. When they did something wrong and did not do well, they were still scolded like turtles by their princess, like a child.
With this thought in mind, everyone was no longer so afraid of these officials. They even kindly guided those who did the wrong steps. They suddenly felt that they were quite awesome. They did not expect that one day, they would be able to teach those high-ranking officials skills. It would be a very prestigious thing to do.
If there was one, there would be two. Gradually, themoners realized this, so they fought enthusiastically to help those officials who did not know how to do it and did the wrong thing.
For a moment, the enthusiasm of themoners made the officials feel mixed emotions.
He did not expect that he had been an official for so many years for nothing. He did not even understand such a simple truth. Fortunately, they were awakened by Princess Ming Yue in time. It was still not toote to work hard now!
The officials once again strictly followed the correct seedling procedures. After the old vige chief and Wang Tiezhu helped to check the seedlings, they received a message from Chun Hua saying that the Princess wanted them to rest on their own and continue tomorrow.
When the officials heard Chun Huas words, it was like the students in the ssroom hearing the school bell.
As for where they were staying, it was the inn in the vige.
However, one of them did not want to live in that small inn with so many people, and there were other people in the inn.
Which one is the vige chief?
When the Old Vige Chief heard this, he immediately wanted to go over but was stopped by Wang Tiezhu. That person was obviously not easy to get along with. It was better for him to do it.
Sir, I am the vige chief of West River Vige. May I ask what is the matter?
When that person heard Wang Tiezhu actually call himself me, his brows furrowed. He thought that it was not appropriate for him to meddle with things now. Moreover, Princess Ming Yue was staying in the princess manor outside the vige. Right now, he only wanted to find a good ce to quickly stay and have a good sleep. Tomorrow, he still had to do that old bastards seedling raising, so he would not be calctive with this country bumpkin.
Because this vige was small, when they first came here, Princess Ming Yue told them not to bring any manservants. Each of them could only bring one at most. He only brought one concubine. Now, he didnt have any manservants, so he wanted Wang Tiezhu to help him run errands.
Go outside the vige and help me rent a courtyard.
Wang Tiezhu heard this persons arrogant tone. Was he ordering him around?
Hehe, look at him. He even wanted him to rent a courtyard outside the vige. He didnt even see who bought that courtyard.
Im sorry, sir. I cant do this.
What do you mean?
As the magistrate spoke, he took out a silver ingot worth five taels and threw it to Wang Tiezhu. He could not cause any trouble now, so he had to bear with it.
The rest is yours.
He thought that the five taels of silver would definitely make this noob do things for him, but he did not expect that the noob would return the silver to him.
Milord, youre really making things difficult for me. Those courtyards outside really cant be rented.
You, a small vige chief, actually want to ask for an exorbitant price. This official advise you not to refuse a toast only to drink a forfeit!
Who wants to punish my brother-inw!
Gu Ying had just returned home from the school and heard from MO Ruyue about what had happened here, so he came over to take a look. Coincidentally, he overheard the magistrates words.
From afar, he could see the magistrate ring at Wang Tiezhu impatiently. It was obvious that he was looking for trouble.
General Xue!
The magistrate greeted him politely. When he heard his words, he felt a little nervous.
He really didnt expect that this noob was actually General Xues brother-inw. Was it true or false?
It didnt look fake..
Chapter 597 - 597: A Trash Name
Chapter 597 - 597: A Trash Name
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Wang Tiezhu wasnt the type to bully others. He knew that his brother-inw was also protective of his own people, and he was afraid that things would blow up and take the initiative to exin.
Big brother, this lord doesnt want to stay in our viges inn and wants me to rent a courtyard for him outside the vige. How can I rent those courtyards? But this lord doesnt believe me and thinks that I want to ask him for an errand fee.
Thats what happened.
The old vige chief was listening at the side. When he saw the magistrates expression, he had already gestured for the vigers to go to the princesss manor to look for him. When he saw Gu Ying, he heaved a sigh of relief.
Tiezhus exnation was correct and did not distort the truth. However, was this really not aint?
The magistrate had a bad feeling.
Sir, I advise you not to think about it. If you think you cant stay in the inn in the vige, you can go to the town or the county now.
Gu Ying knew that the magistrate was looking for trouble. However, the main symbol of their development in West River Vige could not be used as an inn. The magistrate was not that fearful of Gu Ying. He had people in the capital.
He felt that these people were deliberately bullying him.
General Xue, can you tell me why you cant rent the house over there to me?
You still dont believe me?
Ill tell you one thing. Three of the houses there belong to the Empress Dowager.
He didnt say that the Emperor bought it, in case this person didnt believe him, so it was better to keep a low profile.
The rest of the residences are for people like Hua San, Master Hua, etc. Dont talk about the Empress and the Empress Dowager, just Master Huas residence, why would he rent it to you?
Then we dont dare to ask. Why dont you go to the capital and ask yourself?
Sorry to disturb you.
When the magistrate brought his concubine back to the inn in Xihe Vige, there was only one low-ss room left. He was so angry that he blew his beard and red. In the end, a county magistrate under his jurisdiction gave him his middle-ss room.
After Gu Ying went back, he told MO Ruyue about the magistrate. MO Ruyue listened to him and asked Chun Hua to put the magistrates name in bold and ck on her notebook.
Just as Granny Rong and Jiayao were about to prepare dinner, Su Luo brought his servant with him to pick up two loads of things.
Wow, seafood!
Is this seafood?
How could it be!
Delicacy had spent quite some time in the imperial kitchen, so she recognized seafood. However, this was the first time she had seen such arge seafood, so she was not sure.
It was the Eagle Guard who had gone to get seafood.
As expected of someone from the imperial kitchen. These are seafood.
Su Luo said and ran to look for MO Ruyue. He wanted MO Ruyue toe and see the surprise for her.
As MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were talking about the prefectures and magistrate, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were not the only ones who came. When they saw the four big baskets on the kitchen floor, they were also shocked.
King crab!
Drago!
Red Stone-spotted!
MO Ruyue couldnt see anything else clearly.
Did Boss Yu send this over?
Boss Yu is really not bad. He hasnt even married his sister yet, and hes already starting to be generous!
Su Luo, Whats going on?
Sister, this is not a gift from Boss Yue It has nothing to do with him.
It was me! 1 got someone to go back and get it for you!
Are you surprised? Are you surprised?
MO Ruyues eyes widened. Wow! Big Brother, youre the best!
Su Luo was already prepared to receive all kinds of praise from her sister.
In the end, he said, Jiayao, hurry up and steam this crab! And this fish was also steamed!
The prawns were washed clean, the cramps were broken, and they werewrapped in salted egg yolks and fried!
And that
The weather here was just like the spring in March in other ces. Of course, the temperature might be a few degrees lower, so they might not even feel the difference. They could not put the seafood in. They had to finish it. There were so many of them, and they could not finish it even if they ate hard. There was really too much.
Those who were familiar with the vige, such as the old vige chief, Wang Dazhu, and Mrs. Chen, would send some over and let them taste it. They also told them the simplest cooking methods-steaming, boiling, frying, and frying.
As for Wang Tiezhu and Qin Qingfei, they naturally came to his brothers house to freeload.
At first, Sullo was a little disappointed. Between him and the seafood, the seafood actually had the upper hand. Therefore, he turned his grief and indignation into strength and ate heartily.
Yes. How fragrant!
He had nevercked seafood since he was young, but he had never known that seafood could be so delicious.
A younger sister was indeed a younger sister. She was amazing!
Sullo had unlocked a new way to eat seafood. He felt that he could open a seafood restaurant in the Nortnd Imperial City. He should be able to earn money quickly.
Not only could it be steamed, fried, boiled, or fried, but it could also be boiled in a pot.
Thinking of this, Su Luo gave herself a thumbs up in her heart. He was really too smart. She didnt expect that after being with her sister for so long, she would be infected and be smarter.
Everyone saw that Su Luo seemed to have not eaten for ten days. It could be seen that the temptation of the fresh seafood was not something that ordinary people could resist. Seeing that Su Luo had taken half of the little green dragon alone and finished it in a few bites, they all sped up and ate like wolves and tigers.
MO Ruyue had eaten her fill and was peeling crab legs for Qin Qingting and Qin Qinghao. Only then did she have the time to think of the people who went to fish for seafood.
Big Brother, which capable person under you is so capable? Its not easy to fish such seafood, right?
She wanted to say that this kind of deep-sea seafood could not be salvaged by ordinary people, and it was basically impossible to encounter it.
Moreover, these seafood could only be found in the deep sea. It was not something that ordinary people could do at will.
Sullo immediately called the Eagle Guard over.
Princess wants to ask you some questions. Dont hide anything and answer directly.
After saying that, Su Luo scooped a bowl of Buddha Jumps Over The Wall Soup and drank itfortably.
This subordinate Ying Jiu greets princess. Please give me your orders. MO Ruyue smiled when she heard Ying Jius name.
Big brother, your name is as useless as mine. As expected of brother and sister.
Thats right!
Not only did Su Luo not feel that it was a shame to have a useless name, but she also felt that it was very glorious. He and his sister were the same in this aspect. They were indeed biological siblings!
Did you use some method to fish up the seafood at the bottom of the sea, or did someone else fish it up?
How long did it take to transport the seafood from the Nortnd to this ce and still keep them alive?
Replying to Princess, this subordinate personally went into the sea to catch them. It took one day to catch these seafood, twelve days to go back and forth, and a total of thirteen days.
On the way, when the seafood was about to die, his subordinate would throw them into the water and give them some internal energy.
In fact, he had salvaged six frames. On the way back, he had been bumpy and thirsty, but two frames had died.
What?
Nio Ruyue felt that she was listening to the Heavenly Book. This Ying Jiu was so capable!
Even though he could take a shortcut to the Nortnd, he couldnt be that fast even if he used Qinggong!
Ying Jiu wouldnt lie to the siblings, so there was only one possibility. This person was strong in martial arts and had deep internal energy.
Can you feel how good his martial arts are?
MO Ruyue asked Gu Ying beside her.
We have to fight to know, but I can feel that his internal strength is even deeper than mine..
Chapter 598 - 598: Make-up
Chapter 598 - 598: Make-up
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Nio Ruyue understood in her heart that it was even more profound than Gu
Yings internal energy. No wonder.
Other than you, who else in the Eagle Guard can do this?
Ying Jiu didnt stop at all. He didnt care how many people were present. His Lord had told him not to hide anything. Moreover, the Princess had a jade token that couldmand them. Therefore, the eagle guards treated MO Ruyue as their own master.
There are a total of nine people in the Eagle Guard. They can be like Ying Nine. Ying Three and Ying Six are more powerful than me, but they have been sent to do other things.
MO Ruyue quickly raised her hand to stop this guy, telling him not to hide anything and not to reveal everything so clearly. He should have seen who was here. Fortunately, they were all family.
Even without Ying Jiu telling her what Ying Three and Ying Six were up to, she knew that they must be helping her big brother plot something in the north that no one could know about.
MO Ruyue took a closer look at Ying Jius face. He seemed rather haggard. She reckoned that he had not rested much on the way.
Have you eaten?
This subordinate is preparing to eat.
In fact, before Su Luo called him over, Ying Jiu had just taken a bite. Now, he was so hungry that his chest was sticking to his back. He smelled the fragrance in the hall, and the craving in his stomach was already wreaking havoc in heaven.
If it wasnt for the fear of losing hisposure, his stomach would have rumbled loudly, and he forcefully suppressed it with his internal energy.
Chun Hua, give the te of grilled squid and the te of Four Happiness Meatballs to Ying Jiu.
Chun Hua ced two tes of dishes in front of Ying Jiu. Here, this is a gift from the Princess.
Ying Jiu was so excited that he didnt know what to do. Princess reward was too much for him!
This was a gift from their princess. Moreover, he was the first person to receive a gift from the princess, and it was even so delicious!
He hadnt even eaten yet, but he was already drooling when he looked at it.
Alright, hurry up and go down to eat.
MO Ruyue saw that Ying Jills eyes were fixed on the two dishes. He must be starving.
Moreover, he had been on the road for so many days. It could be imagined that he had not eaten much. It was also because his internal energy was profound. Otherwise, he would not have been able to do anything.
Normal people definitely couldnt do it. Such a talent definitely couldnt be starved to death.
Thank you, Princess!
Ying Jiu happily carried the two dishes and left.
After Ying Jiu left, Su Luo finally stopped eating. His stomach was already bulging.
Hurry up and give Big Brother a pot of digestion tea.
Chun Hua immediately went to make tea, and the servant girls came in to quickly clean up the dishes.
Sister, your chef is really good. Where did you find her? The Empress Dowager and Empress Dowager gave her to me.
Su Luo felt stifled when he heard that.
Look at him. He was so capable even when he just gave him a cupboard.
No, he had to speed up. Otherwise, her real brother would be surpassed by the imposter.
Although he was jealous, he was still very grateful to Ji Hong and his family. If it werent for their care, his sister probably wouldnt be able to live such a life.
Of course, his sister had also done a lot for their family. Everyone was on the same side. It could be seen that his sister was a person with deep luck. After going through so many hardships, there were still good results. He could not be the one who dragged him down.
Sister, Brother-inw, what do you think about me opening a seafood hotpot restaurant in the Imperial City of the Nortnd?
The weather in our country is cold all year round. Wouldnt it be beautiful if we could make such a pot and eat the seafood hot and warm?
l think it works!
Su Luo asked himself that he didnt need MO Ruyue and the others to answer.
He gave himself an affirmative answer. He just wanted to have a chat with MO Ruyue and the others. In fact, he had already made up his mind.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying nodded in praise. After all, the weather there was the best for eating hotpot. Moreover, seafood was as easy to get there as chicken, duck, and pork. It was simply a profitable business.
Moreover, this was his first time. As long as he had a good grasp of the recipe, he was not afraid of others imitating him.
Its just that you guys see, its more difficult for me to cook.
We cant give you our chef.
Before Su Luo could finish speaking, Gu Ying spoke. If Jiayao left, his wifes food would lose a lot of vor and definitely wouldnt taste good. Moreover, Granny Rong was old, and Chun Huas cooking would definitely be iparable to the delicacies.
Chun Hua and Granny Rong could not leave their princess either.
Brother-inw, youve misunderstood. I was thinking, can I get your chef to help me train two people? I dont have to learn 100% of her skills, just 50% is enough.
Moreover, I saw that there are quite a number of medicinal herbs in this hotpot. Actually, the main reason why this hotpot is delicious is because of the ingredients and the seasonings. If you master these, even if you dont know how to cook, it shouldnt be difficult to make it, right?
Big Brother, are you really not a chef?
He knew it so clearly.
Its not a problem to teach you two cupboards.
However, the ingredients used in your hotpot restaurant have to be traded with us. Other people cant.
Even if someone gave it to you for free in the end, you cant cooperate with others. You cant reveal any secret recipe, or youll be finished. Nio Ruyue counted her fingers and exined to Su Luo.
Of course, dont worry.
The siblings had to settle the ounts and discuss the cooperation process. Nio Ruyue was impatient. The restaurant had not even opened yet, but she had already written a series of contracts for the hotpot seasoning recipe, and the siblings signed them.
Tomorrow, Ill bring it over and get my elder sister and her husband to sign it.
Oh, 1 almost forgot. Tomorrow is the 22nd of the first lunar month.
There were still more than ten days left on the 22nd day of the new year, but it would arrive in the blink of an eye.
That night, MO Ruyue asked Granny Rong, Chun Hua and the others to check again. They were going to bring gifts for Qin Rouwans wedding.
These things couldnt go wrong.
The few of them watched it together until 11:00 pm. After confirming that there was no mistake several times, they washed up and went to bed.
The next day, when MO Ruyue and Gu Ying arrived at Qin Manor with all the children, Qin Rouwan was already dressed in her wedding gown and was waiting for her with her bare face.
They had agreed on this before. MO Ruyues makeup skills were superb, and everyone had witnessed it with their own eyes. Moreover, Qin Rouwan was getting married for the second time. Yu Hongsheng only wanted to make Qin Rouwan more dazzling, so he had specially asked MO Ruyue to put on bridal makeup for Qin Rouwan.
Im notte, am l?
As MO Ruyue spoke, Chun Hua, who was behind her, had already opened the makeup bag that MO Ruyue had prepared and arranged the things inside. The other servant girls also tactfully brought the stool for MO Ruyue to sit on.
No, its still early. Princess, theres no need to rush.
Qin Rouwans nanny looked at Qin Rouwan lovingly.
Im not in a hurry. Im just afraid that Ill dy the time. Aiya, Sister, youre really beautiful today. You havent even put on your makeup, but youre already so beautiful that I cant take my eyes off you!
Qin Rouwan was already immune to MO Ruyues sweet words.
MO Ruyue was putting on makeup for her, so she did not dare to say anything in case her makeup smudged and she would have to redo itter.
MO Ruyue saw that it was rare for Qin Rouwan to not be able to bicker with her, so she started to talk enthusiastically.
Qin Rouwans foundation was good to begin with, so she only drew her eyebrows, eyeliner, put on a floral ornament, brushed her blush lightly, and applied some lipstick.. It was done!
Chapter 599 - 599: Epilepsies
Chapter 599 - 599: Epilepsies
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Wow, so beautiful, so beautiful!
Brother-inw Yu will definitely not be able to walk when he sees itter!
Hahaha!
Qin Qingfei, Xue Qing, and MO Ruyue apanied Qin Rouwan in the room to talk to ease her nervousness.
Sister, dont be nervous. Look at how beautiful you are today. Youre simply the most beautiful bride.
Brother-inw Yu marrying you is simply a blessing from his previous life.
Such a beautiful and capable wife is hard to find even withnterns!
Looking at Brother Yus character, I believe that his mother must be a kind and easy-going person.
Qin Rouwan felt much more rxed after hearing the three of them talk. She was actually a little worried about how she would get along with her mother-inw.
Previously, in the Zhou Residence, that Old Woman Zhou was a difficult person to deal with.
Its okay. Im not afraid. Who am l? I have a backer!
Qin Rouwan looked at her sisters and felt more confident. She indeed had a backer. Just the princess MO Ruyue alone was her biggest backer.
As the few of them spoke, the auspicious time arrived. Joy yed outside, and firecrackers crackled throughout the entire street. The bridal sedan chair had already arrived at the main entrance of Qin Manor.
ording to tradition, the marriage of a daughter was carried out by the brother. Doctor Qin did not have a son, so he only had one daughter, Qin
Rouwan.
Yu Hongsheng first entered the room and kowtowed three times to Doctor Qin.
Father, Im here to pick up Rouwan. Ille back to pick you upter.
Hahaha, good, good, good. Ill leave Rouwan to you. Dont worry!
At first, the audience outside did not understand what kind of method this was. After a while, the groom went straight to the backyard and carried the bride out.
Generally, the parents of a married daughter would be reluctant to part with her, but Doctor Qin was smiling. His daughter was no different from having a son in the family.
His daughters house and his house were in the same courtyard. They were only separated by a wall, but there was still a door. He could go to his daughters house whenever he wanted, and his daughter coulde home whenever she wanted.
Now that her daughter had another person who loved her in the future, she couldnt wait to be happy, and he had another son.
The reason why Doctor Qin thought this way was because Yu Hongsheng had already told him that he would be his biological father in the future.
Putting everything else aside, just the fact that he could arrange their wedding residence next door to his was enough to show his sincerity.
This kind of marriage method made the neighbors envious, and even made those unmarried girls envious. They thought that it was enough for their husbands to be so considerate in the future.
The bridal sedan made three rounds around the main street of the town and returned to Xinyu Manor. Yu Hongsheng stepped forward and kicked the sedan. The matchmaker opened the curtain and he personally held Qin
Rouwans hand.
Dont be afraid. Ill carry you.
Qin Rouwan nodded.
Yu Hongsheng carried his wife on his back as they stepped over the brazier and entered the Yu Residence for the ceremony.
Although these two were married twice, all the rtives and friends who came to visit were very optimistic. At the banquet, Hua Jianan, Wang Tiezhu, and the others helped Yu Hongsheng hold a lot of wine. They did not want the groom to get drunk.
Their three sons were not from the same family before, but now they were even more of a family. They toasted their rtives and friends like real brothers. The adults were also embarrassed to let the three of them drink wine, so they drank fruit wine.
As the banquet was about to end, there was amotion outside the door.
Help! Please save my daughter, 1 beg you
At the wedding banquet, several doctors pricked up their ears. This was their duty.
When he heard the cry for help, he reacted faster than anyone else.
It turned out that all the doctors in town hade to the wedding banquet today.
This would never have happened in the past. After all, they still had apetitive rtionship with Doctor Qin. However, ever since MO Ruyue became a princess, the other doctors, even those doctors from Renfu Medical Hall who had always been arrogant, had lowered their heads to befriend Doctor Qin.
Before this, Doctor Qin had not been very enthusiastic about them. He knew what those people were thinking, but he did not expect that they would alle to eat under the pretext of his daughters wedding. As the saying goes, when a family is doing business, those whoe are guests. There is no reason to chase them out.
He never expected that all the medical centers in the entire tovvn would be closed for the wedding today. The patients in the town could not be treated, so someone came here to beg for help.
Of course, the Qin familys medical hall had to be closed for a day. Today was the day that Doctor Qins daughter was getting married. How could it be
opened again?
However, he had also prescribed all the medicines needed by the previous patients a day in advance.
Hearing the womans cry for help, Doctor Qin was the first to rush out. He was followed by all the physicians in his clinic. Soon after, the other physicians reacted and followed him out.
The woman was holding a two-year-old baby in her arms. The baby was already foaming at the mouth, and the womans eyes were red and swollen from crying. If it wasnt for the fact that there was no doctor in town and it was toote to go to the county, she wouldnt havee to the door of the wedding to cry and cause bad luck.
However, she really had no choice. When she saw dozens of peoplee out at once, she was so shocked that she forgot to cry.
He looked up and saw that all the doctors in the town were here.
When the woman saw so many peopleing out, she hurriedly lowered her head, not daring to let others see her face clearly. However, she did not forget to ask for help.
Doctor, please save my daughter!
Shes been like this for half a day, sob sob
Dont cry first. Da Qing, hurry up and carry that little baby to the porch of the next courtyard.
There was a long bench in the porch, and Da Qing directly ced the child on it.
During this process, he took his pulse. When Doctor Qin and the others came over, he quickly told Doctor Qin the results.
This child has epilepsy.
Da Qing did not forget to stuff a balled handkerchief into the childs mouth to prevent her from biting his tongue. The handkerchief was his own.
Go get the silver needles.
Doctor Qin gave the order, and a medicine boy ran over to bring Doctor Qins special silver needles. Because Doctor Qin was a doctor, he had a set of medical tools at home and in the clinic.
Everyone, spread out. This doll needs enough fresh air. Dont block it.
Da Qing quickly evacuated the crowd that was blocking the way to watch the show. The other doctors also helped to evacuate the crowd when they saw this.
These were all famous doctors in the town. No one dared to disobey what they said. They wanted to watch the show but also withdrew from the circle.
Doctor Qin took advantage of the time when the medicine boy went to get the silver needles to check the pulse. After confirming that Da Qings diagnosis was correct, he began to apply acupuncture on the two-year-old girl. The little girl no longer twitched.
The woman was so scared that she fell to the ground.
After a while, Doctor Qin took out all the silver needles from the babys body. The baby woke up, but his eyes were a little dull.
Doctor Qin carefully checked the childs pulse and removed the handkerchief from her mouth. However, the child was still drooling and did not know how to swallow.
Aiya, whats wrong with that child?
Did you get stabbed silly?
Because this woman had been crying all the way here, manymoners had followed her to watch the show.
They had all seen Doctor Qin inserting needles into the babys head. Two needles were directly inserted into the childs head. They thought that he had been stabbed silly and subconsciously blurted out.
When the other doctors heard this, they red at him. Nonsense! You have to take responsibility!
This formation gave the person a fright. He retreated repeatedly and shrank into the crowd..
Chapter 600 - 600: New Face
Chapter 600 - 600: New Face
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
This child should have been born a fool. It has nothing to do with my master.
Previously, she had epilepsy. My master gave her an injection to save her life. Dont say bad things without knowing anything.
Qing Kingdom was the first to stop. They dared to nder his masters reputation. That was even more uneptable than ndering them.
When the person who had spoken earlier saw the crowds reaction, he retreated again and retreated out of the crowd. He was so scared that he fled.
Madam, you can say it yourself.
After Da Qing said that, she felt that it would not do. She had to let the childs mother rify herself.
The woman saw that she could not quibble, and the doctors present could only nod their heads.
Thank you for saving my life, doctor. 1 dont have any more silver. This hairpin can be used as payment for the consultation, okay?
The woman pulled out a small silver hairpin from her head and handed it to Doctor Qin.
Today is my daughters wedding day. Ill do a good deed on that day.
Doctor Qin refused. It was obvious that this woman had a difficult life. Moreover, she had an idiotic daughter. Presumably, it was not easy.
Because they had their own children, they couldnt help but soften their hearts when they saw other peoples children being sad. This was amon problem for most parents.
When the woman heard Doctor Qin say this, she grabbed the hairpin and carried the child to leave, but was stopped by Da Qing-
You are so rude. My master saved your daughter out of kindness and exempted her from the consultation fee, but you dont even have a word of thanks?
Da Qing, let her go.
Da Qing reluctantly stepped aside.
The woman who was carrying the child with her hair covering half of her face turned around and hurriedly thanked Doctor Qin before carrying the child and running away.
This matter was just an interlude for them. The banquet was about to end soon, and everyone was not in the mood to eat.
Doctor Qin asked Da Qing to bring the two doctors back to the Qin familys medical center. There had to be someone in the medical center.
The other doctors saw Doctor Qins behavior and also took their leave and returned to the medical hall. They had originallye to make friends, and now that they had eaten the banquet, there was no reason for them to stay any longer.
MO Ruyue, on the other hand, felt that the back of the woman who was carrying the child and running away looked familiar.
She wasnt the only one who had the same thought. An old woman not far in front of her said.
Oh, is this the daughter-inw of the Buzhou family?
If you didnt say it, I really wouldnt have noticed it.
She even knew how to cover her face with her hair, and she also knew that she was too ashamed to face anyone!
Thats right. It was because of her that Doctor Qins daughter divorced Zhou Zhengqing!
It was really karma. At that time, she had relied on the piece of meat in her stomach to insist that it was her son. That old madam Zhou had insisted that her son marry an equal wife, which was why she had driven away the original wife!
Thats right, thats right. I also know a little about that matter. After the Zhou family chased away a daughter-inw who knew how to make money and prosper the family, they plummeted. Now, theyre even worse than ordinary people.
On the other hand, our Doctor Qins daughter has found a good man. In the future, the Zhou family will regret it!
Whats the use of regretting it? Its better to regret it to death. This person cant be too greedy. He deserves what the Zhou family did!
Isnt that so?
Zhou Zhengqing and Qin Rouwans divorce had caused a hugemotion in Reliance Town.
Now that this matter was brought up, everyone was still talking about it. However, they took into ount the face of the Qin family and were more reserved.
MO Ruyue overheard the discussion among the onlookers and recalled that the persons back was so familiar. It turned out to be Zhou Zhengqings cousin!
Ever since Qin Rouwan and the Zhou family had divorced, they had never paid attention to the Zhou family. They only knew that the Zhou familys original businesses had been secretly transferred to Qin Rouwans name, which was why their family had fallen.
That Zhou Zhengqing was also a useless person. ording to the connections he had umted before, he would have been a better person. He would not have fallen to this point. He could only me himself.
It was quite satisfying for this bad guy to receive bad news.
He treasured the child in his cousins womb and even used it to mock Qin Rouwan. In the end, not only was it a daughter, but she was also a fool. It was obvious that the heavens were fair.
It was fortunate that the child was a fool. Otherwise, he might not have grown up in the Zhou family.
The magistrate and county magistrate of West River Vige didnt see Princess Ming Yue today. They were sent by the Emperor to learn how to grow seedlings, but the one who taught them wasnt here. Who were they going to learn from?
The old vige chief led the vigers to follow MO Ruyues suggestion and wanted to organize these people to continue learning. Logically speaking, these people were all adults and had already learned once yesterday, so there shouldnt be any problems. In the end, these people didnt see Princess Ming Yue and were unwilling to learn frommoners like them. They felt that it would be beneath them to learn from these nobodies.
The old vige chief had already said it out loud, but they ignored him. In a fit of anger, he did not care anymore and took the vigers to raise the seedlings himself.
They had a lot ofnd and were waiting. They couldnt waste time on these seedlings.
Those adults did not want to learn from him.
After that, he would go up the mountain in the afternoon and trim the old branches of the fruit trees. That way, the fruits would grow more, better, and sweeter in summer and autumn.
MO Ruyue and the others had returned after having dinner at the Qin familys ce. As for making a scene in the nuptial chamber, they were all adults. They only needed to joke around for a while. They would not make a scene in the nuptial chamber like young men.
Besides, Qin Rouwan and Yu Hongsheng had finally gotten together. They were just like MO Ruyue and Gu Ying when they got married. They were so happy that they couldnt even make a scene.
As soon as MO Ruyues family returned home, Granny Yan, who was in charge of the house, told MO Ruyue about what the county magistrate and magistrate had done today.
In fact, many county magistrates wanted to continue learning from the old vige chief and the others. However, because the county magistrates were standing in front of them, they had no choice. It was equivalent to being coerced. Therefore, the mastermind of todays incident was the county magistrate who took the lead.
MO Ruyue gave her a look, and Chun Hua took out a small notebook and began to write down what Granny Yan had said.
Early the next morning, the prefectural magistrates and county magistrates were waiting for MO Ruyue at the vige inn. However, MO Ruyue still did not show up even when it was almost lunchtime. The prefectural magistrates could not wait to ask the old vige chief about it.
Of course, it was impossible for them to go to the old vige chief personally.
The county magistrates had called the new county magistrate of Reliance Town, County Magistrate Huang, and asked him to look for the old vige chief.
Every time these prefects talked to County Magistrate Huang, they felt that they had lost their status. Originally, Magistrate Wu should have been the one to receive them, but Magistrate Wu was busy with work, so he entrusted the task to the new County Magistrate of Reliance Town.
County Magistrate Huang was a new face, and he was young. Everyone looked down on him and felt that he was not qualified to teach them. They did not talk to him and would rather let him talk to the chief of Xihe Vige.
County Magistrate Huang was twenty-eight years old. He knew that he was still inexperienced, so he only followed these people and learned humbly. He did not steal the limelight.
Yesterday, there were a few times when he wanted to organize these people, but he waspletely mocked by them. He did not bother anymore. Magistrate Wu and the Princess asked him to lead these people well, but they did not let him lead them. He had no choice but to report it..
Chapter 601 - 601: I Can’t Help
Chapter 601: I Cant Help
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
l wonder if Princess cane today?
County Magistrate Huang called the old vige chief over, and the few county magistrates who were just short of being the servants of the county magistrate took the initiative to ask questions.
How would I know? What kind of person is the Princess? How could a mere noob like me know her schedule?
In fact, the old vige chief was looking down on these county magistrates in his heart.
What a coincidence. I, a mere noob, do know, but I dont want to say it. Ill see if you can do anything to me!
The old vige chief was secretly pleased.
Their princess is someone who does great things. Shes so busy every day that she doesnt even have time for herself. Previously, she specially took the time to give you a demonstration, but none of you took it seriously.
Do you really think that you are the God of the Heavens, and the princess still wants to revolve around you? Dream on!
After the old vige chief finished speaking, he ignored the magistrate and went to do his own things. Today, they still had to go to another mountain to dig for spring bamboo shoots.
ording to the Princess, time was money and could not be wasted.
The magistrate saw that the old vige chief and the others had endless work to do every day, and they didnt buy it at all. Could it be that he, the magistrate, was in a hurry to let those nobodies teach them?
The vigers were busy with their own things. No one cared about what these officials wanted to do. In their opinion, these people were just having nothing to do.
They thought that just because they were officials, they had to be worshipped by themoners. Look at how they were spoiled!
There was even a princess in their vige who did not put on airs like them!
MO Ruyue had told them that they could just work as usual every day. Moreover, with the old vige chief taking the lead, no one bought the words of those county magistrates.
County Magistrate Huang could not help butugh when he saw the vigers like this. However, he was still surrounded by the county magistrates and county magistrates, so he did not dare to show too much of his emotions, lest they tantly make things difficult for him.
County Magistrate Huang, go and ask Princess Ming Yue what rules we should follow here. We cant just sit here and do nothing every day. Were here to learn how to grow seedlings!
County Magistrate Huang quivered. He thought that his little trick had been discovered. Fortunately, it was still fine.
A few of the prefects were really anxious. They saw that many of thends under their jurisdiction could begin spring plowing. If they did not learn well and did not return to spring plowing, they would not be able to bear the consequences when they went back to the Emperor.
The weather in some ces was hotter than in other ces, and the prefectural and county magistrates were a little anxious.
Then do you want toe with me or wait here?
They didnt want to go at first, but when they thought about what they were here for, they couldnt wait to go. They decided to go with them.
Thus, these officials all rushed to the Princesss manor outside the vige.
County Magistrate Huang had already been named by the magistrate to question the Princess, so he could only brace himself and ask the gatekeeper.
Everyone, please wait a moment.
The gatekeeper saw that the officials were not afraid at all and hurriedly entered the manor.
While everyone was waiting for the gatekeeper to report, they could not help but look at the luxurious houses on both sides of the main road leading to Ming Yue Mountain Tunnel.
Especially the magistrate who had made a fuss about renting a courtyard the day before yesterday. He suddenly had an idea. He looked at the houses nea_r the mountain. There were a few houses that should still be empty. Perhaps they had not been sold.
Since the Empress and the Empress Dowager had bought a courtyard here, Master Hua had also bought a courtyard here. If he also bought a courtyard here, wouldnt it be closer to the circle of wealth? Even if he bought it and didnt live here, it would be easy for the younger generation toe over in the future.
Hence, he beckoned for Magistrate Huang.
County Magistrate Huang saw that it was the troublesome magistrate from the day before yesterday again, and his scalp tightened. Why was he everywhere?
What orders do you have, sir?
Do you know which of these houses havent been sold?
County Magistrate Huang followed the magistrates finger and looked over. He was pointing at the houses on both sides of Ming Yue Mountain. He quickly shook his head.
Milord, you should know that I was just transferred to Reliance Town and am not familiar with this ce, so I dont know anything about these things. As for those houses, I had to read the records to know.
Alright, then this matter is settled. Ill have to trouble County Magistrate Huang to see if there are any residences that have yet to be sold. My nephew is about toe to the capital to participate in the imperial examination
Princess asked this one to ask Magistrate Huang why he wanted to see Princess.
County Magistrate Huang didnt even take a nap and directly exined his intentions.
The lords are asking when the Princess will teach us how to raise seedlings again.
Teach you how to grow seedlings?
Didnt he teach her the day before yesterday?
Even if you dont learn it, you can learn it from the old farmers in the vige.
The Princess only came up with the idea of nting crops. As for the ability to farm, those farmers were more proficient.
Chun Hua was afraid that the gatehouse would not be able to keep these people under control, so she hade under MO Ruyues orders.
Coincidentally, she heard County Magistrate Huangs words and immediately followed up.
The moment she said this, the faces of the county magistrates turned ugly. Ignoring their expressions, Chun Hua continued, The Princess was tired two days ago and needs a good rest today. The lords should go to the vige and ask the old farmers. There is no need to ask the Princess.
Besides, didnt the Princess leave the matter of raising seedlings to the vige chief and chief of West River Vige to assist the lords?
The adults should go ask them. The Princess was also helpless.
After saying this, Chun Hua also ignored them and gave them a look. She turned around and entered the inner courtyard.
In the end, County Magistrate Huang took the lead and shamelessly begged the old vige chief and Wang Tiezhu to teach them how to raise seedlings again. If they did not learn well, they would not have the face to go back.
The main reason was that it would be difficult to exin to the Emperor.
After a few rounds of beating up, this time, he was truly obedient with the old vige chief, Wang Tiezhu, and the others to learn how to raise seedlings. Fortunately, they had grasped the essentials after a day.
Seeing that many viges and towns had to raise seedlings in advance, the prefectural magistrates who had learned the technique took their leave with MO Ruyue and their county magistrates.
As soon as they left, MO Ruyue was basking in the sun in the garden pavilion. Chun Hua came to report, There are many people from the Womens College and hospital in the vige who want to enroll.
Princess, please tell me.
The teachers from the Womens College didnt need to report to them directly and epted the students. They couldnt make a decision on the hospitals request to study medicine. After all, they needed Princess Ming Yue to teach them personally, so they sent someone to ask.
Only those who have medical skills and understand medicine are epted.
Nim If they were young, smart, and talented, they could take in a few of them as medicine boys.
He let Da Han, Xiao Han, Da Shu, Xiao Shu, Li Xia and Xiao Xue discuss the selection process.
Once youre done, bring it over for me to take a look.
It was best not to ept more than two people from the same vige.
MO Ruyue closed her eyes and instructed Chun Hua before continuing to bask in the sun. She felt that she wascking calcium and needed to replenish it.
Chun Hua personally went to the medical school to find Da Han, Xiao Han, and a few others to exin MO Ruyues instructions.
The first time MO Ruyue recruited people, she wanted them even if she didnt know how to do it. That was because she didnt care if she taught one or two people. But now, she didnt want to teach anymore.
Da Han, Xiao Han, and a few others who were good at medicine could already finish their apprenticeship and could already perform simple external diagnosis. However, they could only bring people who knew some medical knowledge. If they were to teach people who did not know anything, it would be more troublesome. They themselves were not proficient in this field..
Chapter 602 - 602: Pregnant Women Can’t Be Excited
Chapter 602: Pregnant Women Cant Be Excited
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After Chun Hua left, MO Ruyue thought about it and felt that this was not going to work.
Her original intention in setting up a medical school was to free herself. As a princess, she could not stay in the medical school every day to teach those new students.
The second was to let more people learn more and better medical skills, which could benefit more people.
Now, there were more people who wanted to study medicine than ever before.
Wei Yi. rr
Wei Yi suddenly appeared at the door.
Princess, please instruct me.
Go to the town and the county. Ask Master to send someone to go with you to every clinic to find the person in charge. Tell them that if there are doctors who are too old to make house calls but still want to do something, I want to invite them to my medical school as disciples. If they are willing, you can send someone to bring them here and settle them down.
Try to send people from simple families.
The current medical school was no longer the big two- story house that it had been at the beginning. Two rows of inverted rooms were added to the back of the original house, and arge courtyard was enclosed. If anyone was willing toe, she would let them stay there.
Now, her stall was getting bigger and bigger.
Yes.
After Wei Yi left, Su Luo jumped to MO Ruyues side.
Sister, can I find a few people to study medicine with you?
l dont need you to teach me. Ill just learn from them in your medical school.
Su Luo had nothing to do all day. If he wasnt strolling around the Princess manor, he would go to the town. He rarely went to the county, so he liked to stroll around the various viges to see the changes in the viges. His favorite ces were the Medical College, the Womens College, and then Gu Yings Civil and Military Academy.
Su Luo went to the Womens College more often and had seen the skills of the
two doctors there. He had even seen a C-section, but of course, he had never seen it with his own eyes. At that time, he was listening outside. When he learned about theparotomy technique, he was shocked.
He had been quite busy in the past few days. Although he was not in the Nortnd, the deployment in the Nortnd was like a fishing.
He felt that MO Ruyues womens medical college was particrly good.
Sure, you can find reliable people to learn from them. Although my ce is small, I have a lot of talents. Im not bragging. I guarantee that I can teach you somemon small problems.
Nio Ruyue didnt mind as long as she didnt have to work. However, for the sake of her big brothers grand n, she would have to grit her teeth even if she had to go on the battlefield herself. Every moment of leisure was precious now.
After obtaining MO Ruyues approval, Su Luo immediately sent the eagle guards back to look for her.
During this period of time, Gu Ying was busier because the spring examinations were about to begin this year. There were a few students in the academy who could participate in the spring examinations. Gu Ying had been staying in the academy for the past few days to personally supervise those students.
There were so many people, and if he didnt say how many, he would at least have to send out two or three.
During this period of time, the Civil and Martial Arts Institute had started their devil training mode. Gu Ying himself was busy every day until 11 am before returning home.
MO Ruyue looked at Gu Ying, who had obviously be thinner in the past two days, and felt a little amused.
l think you wont stop until you be a great schr.
Thats right. We must be famous in the first batch. Only then will more and better students flock to us in the future. We can even attract those true great schrs.
Gu Ying was at home every day, but he couldnt apany his wife every day. The goal he set for himself was to make the Civil and Martial Arts Institute famous.
Alright, no matter what, youre in the right. Hurry up and drink this bowl of soup.
Gu Ying took the bowl of soup from MO Ruyue and gulped it down without caring what it was.
Oh right, someone from the agency came to deliver something today. Its from Snowworld Vige.
They also brought over several pieces of pine blossom stones. I think they look pretty good. We can ask them to bring more over. These are the onlv things that the big viges in our vigeck. Before the provincial examination, we can hold a tea party for those strange mountains and stones.
Big Brother said that the seafood should arrive in a few days. He could also serve some as a special dish on that day.
There are also a few rare herbs in the north. We dont have them here, but there are many in the north. We can take them out and promote them when the timees.
MO Ruyue was making ns. It seemed like she was going to do something big.
Your idea is good.
When Gu Ying returned, it was already the middle of the night. The two of them had talked for so long, and it was already 10 p. m. The children had already gone back to their rooms to sleep.
If MO Ruyue hadnt been waiting for Gu Ying, she would have fallen asleep long ago.
Its alreadyte at night. Wifey, lets go to bed
Gu Ying picked MO Ruyue up and carried her to their bedroom.
Along the way, the people who saw it all hurriedly lowered their heads and did not dare to look at them.
Although the Prince Consort had been like this during this period of time and had a good rtionship with the Princess, it was still very embarrassing to bump into him.
MO Ruyue waited for him for so long that she was toozy to walk anymore. She let him hug her and enjoyed it quite a bit. She swayed through the courtyard and into the bedroom. MO Ruyue was almost falling asleep.
Gu Ying thought that he would be taking his students to the provincial examination in a few days. He coulde back on the same day, but the busy mood was different from at home.
After the provincial examination, they still had to go to the capital examination. After the capital examination, they had to go to the academy examination. As for whether there were any students who could reach this step, he had been personally watching the students every day these few days. They had to have someone who could reach this step.
After all these calctions, Gu Ying was afraid that he would not be able to have a good time with his wife for a few months, so he had to spend more time now.
When he saw that his wife in his arms was about to fall asleep, he lowered his head and kissed her awake.
Nio Ruyue was sobered up by his actions. She knew what he was going to do when she saw him like that, so she quickly raised her hand to stop him.
My Ruyue letter hasnte yet.
Um.
Gu Ying subconsciously responded. He just wanted to continue what he wanted to do. As he kissed her, he suddenly felt that something was wrong. What did his wife say just now?
Her monthly letter for this month hadnte yet. What did she mean?
MO Ruyue saw that Gu Ying had finally stopped and smiled at him.
Under the warm orange candlelight, the atmosphere was particrly mesmerizing, but Gu Ying no longer had the anxious heart from before.
What did you say?
You mean, you havent sent a letter this month?
Gu Ying calcted the date of today and remembered the date of MO Ruyues monthly letterst month.
He suddenly widened his eyes. Then we, we might
Gu Ying did not dare to finish his sentence, but MO Ruyue nodded with a smile.
Yes, we might have a child soon.
MO Ruyue thought that Gu Ying would be very happy, but she did not expect to see Gu Yings eyes redden as soon as she finished speaking.
Whats wrong with you? Are you not happy that we might have a child?
Dont you want it?
Gu Ying quickly shook his head and buried his face in her heart.
No, Im happy. Im going crazy. Beloved, dont be angry. I heard them say that pregnant women cant be agitated.
There are still a lot of things I cant do. I cant remember at the moment. Its okay. Ill ask Granny Rong, Granny Yan, and the others. Ill also ask Sister-inw Wang and the others!
Gu Ying knew that he had frightened MO Ruyue. He quicklyposed himself, but he was too excited and didnt know what to do.
Put me down quickly and go wash up.
MO Ruyue knew that he was happy, so she was just teasing him..
Chapter 603 - 603: Dirty Tian Zi’s Eyes
Chapter 603 - 603: Dirty Tian Zis Eyes
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Before this, she had been hesitating whether she should have children or not. In fact, she was a little resistant to it. However, when she saw Gu Ying who had been working hard for her, she thought that she should let nature take its course. She even set a time limit of half a year for herself to prepare.
If she got pregnant within half a year, then she would give birth. If she didnt get pregnant within this half a year, they would have Qingting and Qinghao anyway. Qingting and Qinghao were equivalent to Gu Yings descendants, so it was no different from their own children.
Who knew that she would get pregnant in a month just as she was preparing? It was also fate.
Initially, she didnt n to tell Gu Ying in advance. She wanted to give him a surprise. However, she remembered that the Qin family had always inherited the genes for multiple births. It was the kind of powerful genes that both men and women inherited. For safety reasons, she told him. Alright, wife, lie down first. Ill be there in a while.
l dont want to smell like this. How do you know who the mother is?
Hehe, it must be!
Even if its just one, its still our treasure!
Gu Ying hummed energetically and went to wash up.
When she woke up the next day, MO Ruyue was still sound asleep. Gu Ying had already arranged everything for everyone in the house, including what MO Ruyue would eat in the morning.
He had specifically asked Granny Rong and Granny Yan a lot of questions. He felt that these two were people who took care of the Empress Dowager in the pce. They definitely knew as much as the doctor about what a woman should eat during pregnancy, what she could eat, and what was good for the child.
Granny Rong and Granny Yan had suspected that MO Ruyue might be pregnant because of thete monthly letter. However, they did not dare to announce the fact that they had not confirmed it. However, the two of them had a tacit understanding that everything was prepared ording to the possibility that MO Ruyue was pregnant.
Early in the morning, the Prince Consort had called the two of them over so nervously. He asked about pregnant women everywhere. The two of them knew everything in their hearts and could not help but smile. They were so happy this morning.
The maidservant who was sweeping the courtyard identally spilled a basin of water. She had been trembling all morning, afraid of being punished by the two nannies. If she had known earlier, the two nannies were the strictest in the entire manor. Even the princess''[ personal maidservant Chun Hua was afraid of them.
People just couldnt do anything wrong. If they did something wrong, there would always be clues. The more afraid the maid was, the more she would be discovered by Granny Yan. She was already prepared to be scolded and her monthly sry would be deducted.
However, Granny Yan smiled and asked her to sweep in the outer courtyard. Although she was sent away, she was not scolded, which made the maidservants hair stand on end.
Was Granny Yan waiting for her?
Not only did the servant maids sweep away the outer courtyard nervously, but the dogs and deer that usually liked to y in the courtyard were also chased away by Granny Rong.
The dogs and deer felt a little strange. Why were they suddenly not allowed to y at home? If they were not at home, then so be it. They went to the mountains to catch rabbits and eat braised rabbits at night.
The dogs arranged dinner well.
After Gu Ying finished breakfast with the four children, he instructed Chun
Hua several times, From today onwards, dont run around personally for anything. You must stay by Madams side.
If you find anything wrong with Madam, you must tell Granny Yan or Granny
Rong in time.
Chun Hua was the first to know about MO Ruyue!ste monthly arrival. She had even discovered it earlier than MO Ruyue herself. She also knew why the Prince Consort was so strict with her, so she nodded in agreement with a smile on her face.
This servant will obey!
The children looked at Gu Ying strangely.
Gu Ying said, Dont just stand there and eat.
Under Gu Yings urging, the four children did not waste any time. After quickly finishing their breakfast, Gu Ying first sent the two girls to the Womens College.
Although the Womens College was in the vige and the road was very safe, Gu Ying felt that girls should be carefully taken care of when they grew up. They should also be carefully pampered so that they would not be easily deceived by those flowery people. Ever since he came back, he had been the one to send the two girls to school. When he was busy, he would also ask Wei Yi and Wei Er to send them to school.
On the way, Gu Ying repeatedly emphasized to the four children, Your sister-inw and mother have been a little tired recently. Dont let her worry about the big and small matters at home. Try to solve your own problems. If you cant solve them, tell me.
The four children nodded.
Mother is not feeling well. Do you want to get some medicine for her?
Medicine is 30% poisonous. Youve studied medicine with your mother for so long. Dont you know this? How can you always take medicine?
MO Ruyue had already told Gu Ying that although she was basically sure that she was pregnant, it was still too early for her to tell the children.
However, Gu Ying was afraid that the children would cause too much trouble for MO Ruyue. After all, the four children treated MO Ruyue as their mother and liked to look for her whenever there was something wrong.
Especially since Qin Qingting loved to act coquettish and liked to pounce on her mother, she couldnt be so rash.
Anyway, just remember that if theres anything, dont bother your mother and sister-inw. Youre all big kids now, and its time for you to take charge.
The four children wondered if their mother (sister-inw) was seriously ill because Gu Ying had specifically brought this up. They could not help but worry.
Uncle, tell us the truth. Did Mother get some serious illness? I can handle it.
If theres a problem, well think of a solution together. Why dont we go to Grandpa Qin?
The other three children nodded in agreement.
Your sister-inw and mother isnt sick. She is just tired and needs more rest.
Gu Ying exined it to the children before they believed him. The two girls had already arrived at the Womens College.
After sending the two girls off, the two boys followed Gu Ying to the Civil and Martial Arts Institute.
In the Civil and Martial Arts Institute, the students who had been closely watched by Gu Ying for the past few days actually noticed that Principal Xue was very different from usual!
He seemed to be in a particrly good mood today.
However, shouldnt they be nice to him if he was in a good mood?
Why was it even stricter than a few days ago?
Look at your handwriting. Forget about the court examination, even if it was the provincial examination, would it be enough to catch the attention of the magistrate?
If they were lucky enough to go to the court examinations, wouldnt they taint the Emperors eyes?
Rewrite!
Look at your strategy.
Rewrite!
Rewrite!
Rewrite!
Rewrite!
The reason why Gu Ying was stricter than a few days ago was because his wife was pregnant. He had to stay at home and apany her more.
However, the reason why he couldnt apany his wife at home was all because of these students. It would be strange if he had a good temper and expression towards them.
Thinking about how he had to miss out on many days when his wife was pregnant, he was angry. When he was angry, he naturally wanted to find the culprit to bring bad luck. The students would be the targets of his anger.
After a whole morning, the students felt that they had been busy writing for three days. Finally, it was time for lunch.
The students realized that their Dean Xue had gone home, which was a rare sight!
All the students heaved a sigh of relief. Xiong Qiu felt as if he hade back to life.
Dean Xue has been a little strict recently, but hes finally not in charge of us in the school anymore. Lets go.. We should take this opportunity to go to the vige and buy some skewers to improve our food!
Chapter 604 - 604: The Princess of the Northern Kingdom
Chapter 604 - 604: The Princess of the Northern Kingdom
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
In order to allow these students to adapt to the life in the examination hall, Gu Ying did not allow these students to bring their manservants around these few days. If anyone made an exception, they would write an additional policy paper.
Therefore, these second-generation heirs had to do everything themselves.
In order to eat, they were also going all out.
The few students who knew some martial arts were also fast. They almost caught up with Gu Ying and quickly hid.
Gu Ying, who had been absent-minded the whole morning, was really worried about MO Ruyue. He rushed home as soon as the bell rang.
Fortunately, he had not forgotten about the two children. Xiao Qiang, take good care of Qinghao. You guys cane back slowlyter. I have something to do at home first.
Yes, Big Brother.
Little Uncle, is Uncle having diarrhea?
Qin Qinghao looked at Gu Ying, who was actually using qinggong, and felt that this was the most likely possibility.
Oh Maybe.
Qin Qingyan also felt that it was possible.
Granny Rong and Granny Yan were also surprised to see Gu Ying return. It was not that they did not care about the Prince Consort, but the Prince Consort had specifically ordered him not toe back for lunch.
Then, they felt that there was nothing to be surprised about. ording to the Prince Consorts nervousness towards the Princess, if the Princess was really pregnant, it would be strange if he did not act like this.
MO Ruyue and Su Luo happened toe to the dining room at this time.
Before they could sit down, they saw Gu Ying return. MO Ruyue smiled at Gu Ying and said with her eyes, Gu Ying instantly understood why he was making a fuss.
Gu Ying stepped forward and waved Chun Hua away. He personally pulled out a chair for MO Ruyue.
Su Luo had a look of disdain on his face. He also dismissed the maidservant and pulled out a chair to sit down.
When the children came back, they could eat.
Chun Hua quickly went to add more bowls and chopsticks for Gu Ying.
Why did youe back this afternoon?
Didnt he say that he was going to supervise the students?
Su Luo deliberately tried to find a conversation.
l wanted toe back to eat. I wanted to eat this salted chicken. The school didnt have it, so I came back.
What else could Su Luo say? This was someone elses house.
Not long after, the four children arrived home one after another. Wei Yi and Xia Yu went to pick up Qin Qingting and Qin Qingshuang.
A certain someone who had said that he wanted to eat the salted chicken had actually put half of it into MO Ruyues bowl.
Gu Ying had taken some time off in the morning to write a detailed exnation of the pregnancy. It mentioned that MO Ruyues current condition was the most critical period, and it was also a rtively important period. She needed more nutrition.
In the afternoon, Ill get Qing Er and Xiao Fei toe over to apany you.
Gu Ying was helping MO Ruyue shave off the fish bones. As he spoke, he turned around and nced at Granny Rong and the others.
When the timees, you have to watch over the young masters and youngdies of the two families. Dont offend your princess. Yes, Prince Consort. This old servant will remember it.
Granny Rong answered hurriedly.
Its good to let theme. I can tell them about the tea tasting in two days.
l dont want to eat salted chicken anymore.
MO Ruyue had already eaten a big drumstick, so she wanted to eat something else.
Its okay, Ill eat.
Gu Ying said as he stuffed all the salted chicken in MO Ruyues bowl into his mouth.
Actually, you just wanted to eat it yourself, so you gave sister so much.
You knew that she couldnt finish it, but it all became yours. What a sinister person!
Although Su Luo and MO Ruyue hadnt seen each other for 20 years, they were really rted by blood. Their tastes were actually 80-90% simr.
Basically, Su Luo loved to eat whatever MO Ruyue liked.
Gu Ying couldnt be bothered with Su Luo. He directly picked up the remaining quarter of the salted chicken on the te and put it into Su Luos bowl.
Big brother, you eat. Su Luo
Was that what he meant?
Alright, the salt-baked chicken was really fragrant!
Yes, tell them clearly that they will be hosting the tea tasting. You can just sit by the side and watch the overall situation. You dont have to say anything yourself. You still have me when the timees. You dont have to worry about this.
All you have to do now is eat, drink, and rest well. Well take care of everything else, understand?
Im not that delicate. If you tell me not to do anything and act like a fool, wont I suffocate to death?
Although MO Ruyue was azy person, she didnt like to be sozy that she looked like a cripple.
Didnt I ask you to sit there and preside over the situation?
When the timees, you can ask Magistrate Wu e s wife toe over and help you.
MO Ruyue felt that she couldnt win against Gu Ying, but Gu Ying fed her a piece of fish with his chopsticks.
Alright, Im not eating anymore. You can eat the rest yourself. Im full.
Gu Ying didnt force her to do so. He shoved all the remaining dishes in MO Ruyues bowl into his mouth.
He knew that pregnant women couldnt eat too much and had to eat more and
Nanny Rong will make more of the princesss favorite snacks in the afternoon.
Yes, this old servant will remember it and personally supervise Jiayao. Gu Ying was very satisfied.
After dinner, Gu Ying chatted with MO Ruyue for a while. Seeing that it was gettingte, he had no choice but to leave, taking the four children with him.
Only after he left did Su Luo have the chance to talk to MO Ruyue. Previously, when Gu Ying was around, he couldnt get a word in edgewise.
Sister, what tea party are you holding? What kind of taste? Tea leaves?
l was just about to talk to you about this. You havent been around the entire morning. Where have you been?
Hehe, Im going to study now.
You, hurry up and tell me, what kind of tea party are you going to hold?
Your side only knows how to y chrysanthemum parties and tea parties. You can hold several different kinds of parties every month throughout the year.
However, thinking about it, if his Nortnd had such a beautifulnd, he would also be willing to hold a party all year round.
When we were at the border previously, l
MO Ruyue told Su Luo about her rtionship with the Snow World Vige, and Su Luo was envious.
Why arent you from the Nortnd? No, you are the princess of the North!
No, I have to hurry up and wait for you to be the eldest princess of the Northern Kingdom. You have to give us the same n. When the timees, you just have to give us the n.
How are the preparations on your side?
Everyone is already in ce. As long as I earn enough money here
The siblings chatted for a while more. Su Luo saw that MO Ruyue had already yawned twice, and she cursed Gu Ying in her heart. How could he be so unrestrained? Look at how sleepy his sister was!
He decided that when Gu Ying returned today, he would have a good talk with him!
Alright, you go and rest. Ill go and rest too.
Yes, Im indeed a little sleepy.
Wei Si, who had been sent to get help, returned with Xue Qing but did not see her.
Xue Qing heard Nanny Rong say that her sister-inw was asleep. She was about to go into the house to wake her up, but Nanny Rong stopped her.
Grand aunt, the princesss body is not feeling well and has just slept for a while. Please let her rest for a while. Otherwise, if the prince consort finds out, he will definitely me this old servant.
Nanny Rong had no choice but to mention the Prince Consort.
Although the prince consort was obedient to their princess and ced the princess at the tip of his heart, they had long understood that the prince consorts dignityy with his brothers and sisters.
Then Ill go look for Xiao Fei to y for a while, When Sister-inw wakes up, you guys can call me.
Alright, Grandaunt. This old servant will get someone to send you there.
Qin Qingfei was supposed to be here, but her daughter was taking an afternoon nap. The person who called her didnt say that it was an emergency, so he asked her toe back when the child woke up..
Chapter 605 - 605: Tea Party
Chapter 605 - 605: Tea Party
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue woke up an hourter, and Xue Qing had been ying with the two children at Qin Qingfeis ce for quite a while. The servant girl from the
Princesss manor came over to invite them, and the two of them went to the Princesss manor.
l say, Sister-inw, youre really happy. Its good that the children are older. Unlike Sister Xiaofei and l, we have a child who is dragged along by them wherever we go. Were truly a burden!
Sister-inw, why dont you quickly set up a school for children? Sister Xiaofei and I will send our children over.
l can do it. As long as your family is willing to do it, Im willing to do it especially for one of your children!
MO Ruyue thought of the kindergarten in her previous life. It was not impossible to set up a kindergarten, but it was a bit of a responsibility. However, it was not practical to set up a kindergarten at this time. After all, the people here were not like the people in her previous life, where women had to go out to earn money.
Even if she did, she would have to pay for it. Other people might not even be able to earn enough money to pay for the tuition fees. It was impossible for a country bumpkin to spend so much money to hire someone to take care of their child. It was even more impossible for rich families. Those families had children who were initiated at the age of two or three. They had all invited Mr. Xi to their homes.
Besides, would Old Master Hua be willing to let them send their great- grandson over?
Hehehe, I wont say anymore. I heard from Big Brother that youre going to hold some tea party and asked us toe over to discuss this matter.
Xue Qing also knew her grandfather. If she really dared to send her child to some academy, she would probably be whipped.
Sister-inw, what do you know? It sounds so high-end. Let Xiaoqing do it. I dont think I can do it.
Qin Qingfei felt that MO Ruyue was definitely going to hold a meeting rted to the dignitaries. She was born a peasant, so she would not be able to host it.
Thest time she attended the banquet at the Princesss manor and Qin Rouwans wedding, she had helped to entertain the womenfolk. She felt that it was quite strenuous even after one round. She had also experienced thoseplicated etiquette and whatnot. Now, when she heard about the banquet, she had a headache.
If you want me to drink tea and eat snacks, I will.
Sister Xiaofei, youre wrong. Theres always a first time for people. Youve already had two previous experiences.
Besides, your family will definitely have these things in the future. Lets not talk about anything else. When our little girl grows up, wont you hold some tea party for her to look at her son-in mw?!
Xue Qing especially liked Qin Qingfeis Little Niu Niu. Little Niu Niu was Qin Qingfeis daughters nickname, but not many people called her by her full name.
Qin Qingfei felt that Xue Qing was right. She only had one daughter at the moment. Even if she had another child in the future, this would be her life. Also, Gou Dan had to find a good girl to marry in the future. He definitely couldnt just find a random girl.
When that time came, they would have to hold some tea parties or something so that the children could meet each other, or the elders could help check on them.
Xiao Qing, youre right. Then Ill learn from you.
MO Ruyue did not mention that she was most likely pregnant. She only told them that the local specialties such as the Songhua Stone were shipped over from the Snow World Vige and that they needed them to open up a market.
Xue Qing and Qin Qingfeis eyes lit up as they listened to the n.
They loved doing this!
Previously, they had really thought that it was a show about drinking tea and chatting with those madams. They were really not interested. If they could help a poor vige slowly rise up, they would love to do it. After all, their vige used to be so poor that they could not make a living. Now, every household had endless meat to eat every day, and they could even afford to wear silk.
This was all thanks to Sister-inw. Of course, they were willing to do the same.
We cant do this alone. We have to call Madam Wu.
Originally, he wanted to invite her over in the afternoon, cough. I fell asleep in the afternoon. Lets do it tomorrow.
Come back tomorrow and well discuss it together.
In the end, MO Ruyue and the other two sisters-inw discussed for a long time. In the end, they called Madam Wu over and discussed theyout of the venue. They decided on a date to send out the invitations.
If Mrs. Wu did not agree to do this, she would not disagree.
What MO Ruyue was doing was a good thing for the country and the people. If Madam Wu did not agree to it, MO Ruyue could give an order to County Magistrate Wu.
Speaking of which, Mrs. Wu now treated MO Ruyue as her own sister. She was even closer to her than her own sister. As long as MO Ruyue said a word, she would immediately arrive at the scene.
The next day, when Mrs. Wu came, the few women chattered for a long time about how to decorate the venue and what kind of tea and fruit snacks to use.
MO Ruyue asked Su Luo when his people would be able to deliver the seafood. The tea tasting was scheduled for the day the seafood arrived.
They had originally nned to hold the banquet the day after the seafood arrived. MO Ruyue thought that it would be a special feature of the banquet to let the guests have a look at the seafood that they had never seen before. It could also enhance the atmosphere. The others also thought that this was a good idea.
There were still three days before the seafood arrived. MO Ruyue thought that there was no hurry, and they could take their time to decorate the ce, Suddenly, she thought of a serious problem.
She only remembered that it was cold and snowy in the north, so she could add ice to the seafood to keep it fresh. However, the weather here was getting warmer and warmer. When the seafood arrived, the ice would melt long ago, so there would definitely be a lot of seafood wasted.
There were still some living ones left. They were all fed by the Eagle Guards with their own internal strength. It was really not easy. If the seafood was not sold at a price dozens of times higher, it would be a waste to the Eagle Guards who worked hard.
The seafood was all fished up by the Eagle Guards, and it was not easy to get them. She felt sorry for them to die on the way.
How could they waste such good food like this? It was such a pity. However, dead seafood could not be eaten. If it was not delicious, it could cause acute gastroenteritis or something like that. In this era, it could kill people.
Su Luo didnt have MO Ruyues thoughts. Instead, he felt quite happy. Half of the Eagle Guards could be guaranteed to be alive. When the time came, they could be sold for a lot of money. He believed that he would be able to make a fortune very soon.
MO Ruyue looked at him as if he was a fool.
She recalled the seafood in the supermarket in her previous life. Many of them were frozen alive to keep the seafood fresh.
Actually, they could do it too!
Big Brother, Ive thought of a better way to not waste seafood.
Tell me what you have in mind.
Of course, Su Luo didnt want to waste it. How could she not listen?
When you fish up the seafood, freeze them all with ice. If the ice is about to melt halfway, just add more ice.
How can it be that easy?
It wasnt that Sullo hadnt thought of this method before.
Then its fine when were in the north. The ice wont melt. Since the frozen seafood has melted here, wont the ice that we bring with us also melt?
Use saltpeter!
Chapter 606 - 606: Don’t You Have a Son?
Chapter 606 - 606: Dont You Have a Son?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Saltpeter?
MO Ruyue asked someone to find some saltpeter. With her current status, this was still very convenient. In a short while, they would get saltpeter from the county. MO Ruyue instructed Su Luo to make it himself. This way, he might be able to remember the steps better and hand it over to the Eagle Guards.
Big brother, you have to remember that the ice made from saltpeter cant be eaten directly. The water cant be drunk either. It has to be frozen through a basin before it can be used for food.
This was the best way to maintain hygiene.
It was meant to be used on seafood. Seafood had to be eaten. To be safe, a little trouble was inevitable.
When Su Luo personally followed the steps MO Ruyue had taught her and made a basin of clean and edible ice, she was shocked!
This way, they wouldnt have to worry about the seafood dying halfway. They would basically be able to catch as much as they could!
Hahaha, sister is too smart. How did you know all this?
Uh I learned this based on the experience and summary of the seniors in the medical books. I tried it and found that it could really cure ice.
This method is also simple. You have to master it yourself. Dont leak it everywhere.
As she spoke, MO Ruyue waved at Su Luo. Su Luo quickly went in front of MO Ruyue and leaned over to listen. He knew what his sister was going to whisper to him.
Let me tell you, even Gu Ying doesnt know the method to make ice, let alone the Emperor of Xi Liang. You must keep it a secret for me, 1 didnt tell them.
MO Ruyue felt that her elder brother was really pitiful. If he hadnt met her, he would have been fighting alone to survive. Therefore, she wanted to help him more.
It was possible that they were rted by blood, but it was more because the two of them had been together for a long time. She really treated Su Luo as her biological brother.
Of course, Su Luo also treated her as her own sister. There was no better brother than her.
When Su Luo heard her sister say that she was the first to tell him about this method, she was very, very happy!
He felt that he had finally won a round in front of these people. As expected, his sister was still on his side.
Sister, dont worry. I wont tell anyone about this.
As Su Luo spoke, she pointed at the sky and then at MO Ruyue and herself.
But dont worry, I definitely wont let you suffer!
When my great cause is sessful
Alright, do we still need to talk about this with our rtionship? Dont wait until youve aplished your great cause.
At that time, you can let me, your sister, do whatever I want in your northern country.
Of course, is there a need to say that?
Even if he had to give up the throne of the Northern Kingdom to his sister, it was fine.
As Su Luo said this, her eyes suddenly lit up.
Sister, do you want to be the emperor?
When I take the throne, can you be the Empress?
Didnt they always refuse to let me get the throne?
If I dont kill them, Ill lock them in the prison and watch me ascend the throne. Then, Ill pass the throne to you and youll be the emperor.
MO Ruyue knew that the they that Sullo was referring to was the Emperor of the Nortnd and those princes.
What did those people do to his big brother? He actually thought of such a method to deal with them. He hated them.
She looked at her brother who was getting more and more serious and quickly waved at him.
Big Brother, Ill just forget about it. I dont want to be an emperor. Whats so good about being an emperor when its so tiring?
Look at that Ji Hong, who was busy handling all kinds of affairs. He had to take care of all kinds of things.
If he wanted toe out and y, he had to secretly do so, and he had to be in a hurry. He was exhausted. What was so good about the emperor?
1 just want to be a princess who can do whatever she wants all over the world. I can go wherever 1 want, and no one will dare to provoke me. 1 can eat whatever I want, y however I want, and do whatever I want. I want to live a life without any restrictions. This is what life is like. I dont want to be an emperor who works himself to death.
MO Ruyue waved her hands as she spoke. No, no!
Su Luo listened to her sisters words. He also looked forward to the happy days she described. Otherwise, how could he have thought of making her the emperor? Sigh! His sister was too smart to be fooled.
Hehehe, although you dont like it, but big brothers words are sincere. If you want to be the emperor one day, tell big brother and he will immediately give the throne to you.
Remember what Big Brother said today. Its effective at any time.
If you dont like it, why did you go and snatch it?
MO Ruyue asked subconsciously.
At my current level, I dont really like the position of the emperor. I want to fight for it now because of those people. Theyre really too much.
They were bing more and more cruel and ruthless. The lives of themon people under their jurisdiction were getting more and more difficult.
Actually, I dont like being an emperor either. Were indeed siblings. I think the same as you. Its a pity that we siblings have a younger brother.
MO Ruyue knew what he was implying. If he had a younger brother, he could pass the throne to his younger brother, and he could also do whatever he wanted. She had never seen such a prince.
Hey, why dont I give the throne to Guying?
Big brother, you want to make me lose my virginity and fight 3,000 women over him? Are you sure youre not trying to scam me?
He dares!
But forget it. Ill think of other ways. Ill get the throne first.
Su Luo had a headache thinking about how she would have to sit on the throne in the future.
No, big brother, dont you have any concubines? Dont you have a son?
Youll work hard for a few years to govern the country well, then pass the throne to your son!
MO Ruyue then remembered that her eldest brother had been here for a month or two, but he had never mentioned anything about her sister-inw.
She was too careless. The main thing was that there were quite a lot of single people around her, and they were all old. She had almost forgotten that in this era, 20-year-olds could already have children.
Im not getting married. I cant harm the girl.
Su Luo said calmly, but the trace of injury in his eyes did not escape MO Ruyues eyes.
A thought shed through MO Ruyues mind. She quickly grabbed Su Luffs hand and took his pulse.
Su Luo couldnt break free, afraid that she would hurt her sister if she moved too much.
After a while, MO Ruyue was so angry that she wanted to flip the table. Preposterous!
Why are they so vicious? Is that old dog your biological father?
How could they do this to you?
MO Ruyue was so angry that her chest heaved up and down, and her expression changed.
Su Luo quicklyforted him.
Sister, calm down. Its not worth it to be angry with that kind of person. I was poisoned by them when I was young. Later on, when I grew up, I knew some things. I couldnt get a doctor to treat me, so I just didnt care.
Su Luo didnt realize that MO Ruyues expression was getting uglier as he spoke.
Ive thought about it long ago. Lets seize the throne and let that old thief live. Let him watch over his country. In the future, there will be no sessor.
Then, he still wanted to die!
As for whether hes my biological father or not, Ive thought about it before, but I cant find anyone to verify it. Perhaps he really isnt my biological father.
My biological father definitely cant be like that with me.
Otherwise, he wouldnt have been able to watch his other sons cut him off.
He did not dare to say thest sentence in front of his sister.
Sister, dont be angry, dont be angry. Lets just let him watch helplessly. In the end, his country and his world will be taken by someone who isnt his descendant.. Think about it, isnt this very venting?
Chapter 607 - 607: Give Me a Daughter
Chapter 607 - 607: Give Me a Daughter
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Speaking of being infertile, Su Luo still felt a little regretful. Who didnt want to have a child of their own? However, he couldnt show it in front of his sister.
MO Ruyue was furious. The Emperor of the Northern Country was extremely vicious. He was afraid that the Su Family would overshadow his master, so he allowed his subordinates to nder him in the court. He used a chicken feather as an arrow and convicted the Su Family of an unwarranted crime. Then, he unexpectedly executed the entire Su Family.
It was not impossible for him to kill his father-inws family who helped him ascend to the throne and make the son of the Su familys bloodline die!
Whats his name?
Su Luo knew that her sister was asking about the emperor of the Nortnd.
Tuoba Sword, the sword of saber and sword.
Shes indeed a b * tch!
Whats your name in the Nortnd?
Su Luo almost couldnt answer.
My name was Su Luo in the Nortnd. I changed it myself after my mother passed away. At that time, he wanted to pretend to be righteous, so he couldnt do anything to me.
Im also thest trace of the Su familys bloodline. He doesnt dare to kill me, or else hell be cursed by the world.
In fact, Su Luos name was when his mother died. At that time, the little Su
Luo suddenly said to everyone,From now on, my name is Su Luo!
When Su Luo introduced herself to people outside, she always said that her name was Su Luo. She wanted to leave an heir for the Su family and also tomemorate his mother.
The Emperor wanted to show his benevolent side, but he agreed on the surface but gritted his teeth in his heart.
Because of this, Tuoba Jians nominal father turned a blind eye when his other sons drugged him.
Su Luo had always remembered when his mother died. That scene was still vivid in her mind. He had never told anyone about it.
In fact, that scene had always been deeply engraved in his mind. He often dreamed of that scene in the middle of the night. It was only when he came here and met his sister that these nightmares gradually left him. However, he would never forget the torture and pain that had been inflicted on him for so many years.
Wife, whats wrong? Dont be angry. If theres anything, tell me!
As soon as Gu Ying returned, he saw his wifes face was very ugly and pale. He panicked and ran to her side tofort her. He pressed his hand against her back and slowly transferred some internal energy to unblock her meridians, telling her not to be so angry. He didnt even have time to pay attention to Su Luo, who was at the side.
Su Luo didnt expect her sister to be so angry. His heart ached and he was touched.
Sister, dont be angry. Big Brother is really fine.
You dont know how happy I was when I thought I was the only one left in this world!
Su Luos heart ached for MO Ruyue and her heart ached for him. As she spoke, she was about to cry.
Men dont shed tears easily, but they havent reached the point of sadness.
Nio Ruyue knew that she couldnt be so emotional. It wouldnt be good for her and the baby. Seeing that her brother was very nervous about her, she felt even more ufortable. She resisted the urge to cry and smiled.
Im fine. Im not angry. We must seize the throne and keep that old thief alive. Let him watch helplessly as his throne bes someone elses!
She took two deep breaths.
Its okay. Ill definitely think of a way to cure you.
Okay, I believe you, but you dont have to be too anxious. You cant be anxious for a while. After all, its been so many years. Dont worry yourself too much.
It really doesnt matter if you have a child or not, but I just want you to be well.
Su Luo originally wanted MO Ruyue not to worry so much. In order to calm her down, she could only go along with what she said. However, she didnt want her to just dive into it and not do anything else all day. If she was exhausted, it wouldnt be the result she wanted to see.
Gu Ying, who was standing at the side, also understood the carelessness of their conversation. No wonder his wife was so angry. It turned out that his brother-inw had lost his fertility.
As for how he lost it, was there a need to ask? Not to mention his wife, even he was very angry when he heard it.
What kind of despicable method was this!
In the future, if his children were to fight to the death like this, they would not have to fight on their own. He would personally end them and he would be able to live a few more years.
It seemed that she couldnt have too many children, especially if her family was rich and powerful.
If they were unlucky enough to be born with impure thoughts, wouldnt they start fighting?
Wife, dont be so anxious. As long as were all fine, we can think of a way to solve anything. If it doesnt work, we can go and find Master to discuss it with him. We can also borrow two imperial physicians from the pce for the
Emperor. There must be a way.
MO Ruyue hurriedly nodded upon hearing Gu Yings words.
Right, help me send a letter to the pce right now and borrow two of the best imperial physicians who are good at treating this area. The sooner, the better.
Gu Ying quickly nodded. Ill get them to deliver the letter now.
Gu Ying immediately called for a servant girl to bring over a brush, ink, paper, and inkstone. He then wrote a letter to Ji Hong in front of MO Ruyue asking for an Imperial Physician and asked Wei Yi to deliver it personally.
MO Ruyue was relieved when she saw Wei Yi leave with the letter.
Wife, dont be so anxious if anything happens in the future. Its not good.
Su Luo realized that Gu Ying was too worried about her sisters emotional problems in the past two days. Even the children were not allowed toe close to her, and the cats and dogs were not allowed to stay at home and bother her sister.
He was a little suspicious. Now was clearly not the time to ask.
At this time, the children had also returned from school. MO Ruyue knew that it was useless to be angry, so she quickly calmed down.
If that b * tch knew that she was still alive and that there was still a trace of the Su familys bloodline living in this world, what kind of face would she have!
Did that old thief not know that Mother gave birth to me?
Yes, he doesnt knowv. Only I know about this.
MO Ruyue was relieved to receive the answer and went to y with the children. Qin Qingting and Qin Qinghao had received a secret signal from Gu Ying to drag MO Ruyue to tell her what had happened in the school.
Although the two children did not know what had happened at home, they could feel that their mother was not in a good mood. After receiving his uncles gaze, he very tactfully rolled around on MO Ruyues side, begging for her attention.
Sister, is she feeling unwell? Are you guys hiding something from me?
Su Luo saw that her sister had gone out, so she pulled Gu Ying to the side and asked him in a low voice.
Gu Ying thought that he should not hide this from him.
This is just our preliminary judgment. In fact, it should be about right. We thought that it hasnt even been a month, so we didnt reveal it to you.
Ruyue might be pregnant, so Brother, can you tell me first?
If Ruyue were to be so emotional, it would not be good for her and the child in her stomach.
Really? Really? Thats great!
When Su Luo heard this, she quickly grabbed Gu Yings hand and jumped around happily like a child.
Gu Ying smiled and nodded.
How can it be fake if my wife told me personally!
I know shes your wife, but shes also my sister. Why didnt you tell me
earlier
Otherwise, how could he handle himself? However, his heart was still filled with joy.
See, you call me big brother too, right? Its said that your family specializes in giving birth to twins.
You see, I just want to make a deal with you. You see, I might not have any descendants in this life, but you do!
See if you can give me a daughter to raise in the future. I dont want your son. How about it?
Ill give her the entire Nortnd. Ill nurture her into the first Empress of the Nortnd!
In the future, let your daughter look down on the five countries!
Su Luo imagined how beautiful it would be in the future. In the future, he would pass the throne to his daughter. Just thinking about it made her feel good..
Chapter 608 - 608: Songhua Stone
Chapter 608 - 608: Songhua Stone
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
You wish! You want to give birth to your own child! Gu Ying said mercilessly.
Aiya, thats not it. Lets discuss it properly. I might not be able to give birth in my entire life. You cant just watch me be alone, right? At that time, my younger sister would definitely not be able to bear it. I originally wanted to pass the throne to my younger sister, but she didnt want it. She didnt want it, so we can only pass it on to our descendants.
You have so many children at home. Whats wrong with giving me one? I didnt ask you for a son. I just want a daughter.
Cant you have some pity on your brother-inw?
You seem to respect me on the surface, but thats not the case, is it?
Dont pester me. I wont agree to anything you say.
What happened to his daughter? My daughter is also my baby!
If you have the ability, go tell your sister!
When Su Luo heard that, she knew that it was not the case. It was useless to
pester her brother-inw about this matter. She still needed her sisters consent.
Thats a good idea. Ill go find my sister now.
Gu Ying looked at his brother-inw who had turned around to pester his wife for the child and shook his head helplessly.
MO Ruyue would never agree to his request. He had to cure his brother.
If you want to pass the throne, pass it to your own child. If you dont have it, then dont die.
Su Luo was angered by MO Ruyues words and didnt dare to say anything else. She rubbed her nose. However, when she saw that MO Ruyue was chatting with the children and looked fine, she was truly relieved.
Nanny Rong had already asked Yao to prepare the tocoly-preserving soup. During the meal, MO Ruyue ate as much as she could ording to her health condition, without the coaxing of others.
She had to take good care of her body. It was very likely that she would have to help her brother deal with that old thief before she gave birth.
When the time came, her physical fitness would not be able to keep up. Not to mention Gu Ying, even her big brother would definitely not want her to follow.
Even she herself could not bear to let the children in her stomach suffer. Therefore, what she needed to do now was to take good care of her body and eat well.
During the meal, the whole family watched MO Ruyues appetite and ate half an extra bowl of rice.
Early the next morning, which was also the day of the tea tasting, Gu Ying went to the academy to make arrangements and returnedter.
MO Ruyue was taking a stroll in the courtyard after breakfast. Nanny Rong was reporting to her about the details of the venue that was being decorated at home.
Not long after, Madam Wu, Xue Qing, and Qin Rouwan all came over. MO Ruyue personally came to the door with her maids to wee them.
Mrs. Wu was a little ttered by her behavior.
They were close, but MO Ruyue had gone too far bying to the main entrance to pick her up with such a big fanfare. After all, MO Ruyue was a princess, so she couldnt afford such generous treatment! Its really my fault for troubling sisters toe so early.
Sister, what are you saying?
The few of them chatted as they walked into the princesss manor.
Sister, what kind of rtionship do we have? Its just a matter of a word. Dont be so polite. Should I help you or not next time?
Besides, Im helping myself by helping you. This is something that others cant even beg for.
Everyone liked to get along like this. They didnt like to scheme against each other. Otherwise, they wouldnt have been able to y together.
MO Ruyue was even happier when she heard Madam Wu r s words. Indeed, working with smart people was a relief.
As the tea tasting was more important today, Nanny Rong and Nanny Yan were afraid that MO Ruyue would tire herself out when they saw MO Ruyues expression. Hence, they secretly told Xue Qing, Qin Qingfei, Qin Rouwan, and Madam Wu about MO Ruyues pregnancy.
Sister, dont be busy. Leave this to us!
When they found out that MO Ruyue was pregnant, they were so pleasantly surprised that they couldnt hide the joy on their faces.
Aiya, alright, alright. Hurry up and sit there properly. If youre really tired from sitting, get up and walk around a little. Dont worry if you donte to a ce with many people. We guarantee that well do as you say!
If it really doesnt work, when were done setting it up, you can tell us if youre not satisfied with anything. Well just set it up again. Dont walk around here anymore. If you walk around, we wont be in the mood to work.
Since sisters have already said it, then I wont be polite. Ill leave it to sisters today.
Of course, Madam Wu was the best at organizing banquets. Qin Qingfei supervised the kitchen to prepare the desserts, while Xue Qing and Qin Rouwan advocated interpersonal rtionships and the prices of the local specialties of the Snowy World Vige.
The women had their own strengths and quickly organized a banquet. As soon as the banquet was set up, the guests came one after another.
The invitation to the tea party had been sent out when MO Ruyue had invited Qin Rouwan and the others to discuss it together.
Those who had received the invitation arrived on time today. In fact, even more people arrived earlier, afraid that they would be dyed on the way. If they could not make it, they would suffer a loss.
Of course, when they received the invitation, they also heard the purpose of todays main venue from the messenger.
He knew that he was here to buy something, but he was willing.
The moment these guests entered the venue, they saw a huge strange stone that they had never seen before ced in front of the screen wall that was originally the main door.
Upon closer inspection, the strange stone was stackedyer byyer. The color was also gorgeous. The patterns on the stone and the color were perfectly fused. At a nce, they thought that the stone was alive, causing everyone to gasp in amazement.
At this moment, a servant girl introduced it to the people watching. This is a strange stone that our princess identally obtained when she went to the border. Because it was especially beautiful, its shape was especially good, and its color was also beautiful, so the princess brought it back.
Because the princess brought this stone to the battlefield, our Xi Liang won the battle. Therefore, the princess feels that this stone can bring good luck to people,
Everyone listened to the little servant girls introduction with fascination. Princess Ming Yue was indeed a lucky person. The more she looked at this stone, the more beautiful it was. This was much better looking than the dusty fake mountain rock in their courtyard. If they could also put this piece in their courtyard, would they be able to get more luck?
No matter how reluctant these people were, seeing that it was gettingte and they had to enter the venue, they all wanted to find an opportunity to inquire about where this came from and whether they could get a piece to disy at home. The moment they entered, it was enough to shock people.
Todays tea tasting was simr to an auction. There were no male or female seats, but each family sat at a table. Only one or two people came, and two or three or five friends sat at a table. The entire garden was filled. There was a high tform in the center of the garden, and Qin Rouwan wasmanding from the side. Chun Hua introduced the specialties sent by Snow World Vige and the Nortnd.
There was no need to introduce the seafood. Those who ate it would be fine. When they ate the delicious food, they would naturally ask. When the refreshments were served, the servant girls would also exin to the guests in detail what the snacks were made of.
The most popr one sent over from the Snowy World Vige was the Songhua Stone.
The people invited today were all rich people, and they were the masters of the family. There were more literati and rich people. Those people liked these artsy things.
And these things were rare because they were rare. Everything was rare and precious. The pine pine flowers sent from the border were all the same. It was impossible for two pieces to be exactly the same. Natures creation was just so magical.
Those who had snatched it all felt that their piece was the best, as if they had obtained a treasure.
However, MO Ruyue had personally seen every single one of those pine blossom stones, so they were quite valuable for collection. It would be quite decent to give them away..
Chapter 609 - 609: Anything Is Possibility
Chapter 609 - 609: Anything Is Possibility
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Most of the local specialties were sold out, and the customers were eating and drinking happily. The main reason was that the snacks were delicious and fragrant. They had never eaten anything like this before. Basically, the madams and young mistresses would ask the servant girls who served them. Many masters also asked what the snacks were made of and where they could be sold. Thus, the seafood market quietly opened up.
While the tea party was in full swing, Ji Hong received Gu Yings letter from the Imperial Pce, and he had mixed feelings.
He looked at the main content of the letter. It was for him to give it to two imperial physicians who knew how to treat infertility.
He frowned. Could it be that Gu Ying was infertile?
As for Nio Ruyue being infertile, he had never thought about it. Mo Ruyue was a very good doctor herself. Even if she had no ns in this aspect, she would not allow her body to have any problems. Therefore, the only person he could suspect was Guying.
Moreover, Gu Ying had already sent a letter to him, so how could he not agree? Of course, he had to do his best to help him.
MO Yu, go to the Imperial Academy of Medicine
Ji Hong asked the eunuch to bring Wei Yi over and serve him with good food and drinks. He also asked MO Yu to choose a few imperial physicians who were more proficient in infertility. A total of four of them were chosen and followed
Wei Yi to West River Vige.
Before he left, he even got someone to bring along many high-quality medicinal herbs. Of course, they were all medicinal herbs that could treat infertility.
Ji Hongs actions were not small and rmed the Empress Dowager and the Empress.
Because the Empress did not have anything to worry about, her mother-inw was her aunt, and she was the most respected person in the world. Now that she had a son, she seemed to be more and more quick-witted, and the rtionship between Ji Hong and her was getting better and better.
Although the Empress saw the Emperors actions, as a good wife, she would not take the initiative to ask her husband about those things. If her husband was willing to tell her, she would also be very happy to listen.
The Empress Dowager did not care. No matter how old the Emperor was, he was still her son. Her son had done something that she did not understand, so of course she had to ask.
She was also asking for her daughter-inw. In her heart, only the Empress was her daughter-inw. The others were just tools for the royal family to pass on the incense.
Of course, if there was someone her son truly liked, she would treat them sincerely, but no one could surpass the Empress.
Now that the Emperor had found a few imperial physicians, especially those who were infertile, she couldnt help but feel uneasy.
Who was the Emperor treating?
Was it the emperor himself, or was it for someone else?
If the Emperor and Empress Dowager felt that it was impossible, then it was the other concubines who wanted to have children!
The empress dowager called Gu Ying over.
Aijia heard that you asked those imperial physicians to treat someone. Are you trying to make someone pregnant?
I think you should wait until the Crown Prince is older before you have other children.
Ji Hong didnt understand why his mother called him, but when he heard her question, he smiled helplessly. This was a beautiful misunderstanding!
Mother is not what you think.
Yesterday, I received a letter from Gu Ying. He asked me to help find two imperial physicians who knew about that area to lend to him. I didnt know who the person who needed to be treated was, so I sent a few more. I didnt expect to rm mother and make you misunderstand.
Ji Hong nced at the empress beside the empress dowager. Your son naturally wouldnt have such thoughts.
The Empress was a little embarrassed by Ji Hongs stare.
Mother, your son said he shouldnt havee, but you insisted on letting your sone.
The Empress muttered softly, her expression full of embarrassment. Ji Hong felt that the Empress had a hint of a little girls coyness that was rarely seen in the past.
Were a family. Of course, we have to say it clearly in person. I dont want you two to be like the others. If you have something to hold back, you wont be able to vent the unhappiness that has umted in your hearts. Dont hold it in and let your thoughts run wild every day.
The empress dowager looked at the two children and said with a smile.
Mother said that its a matter of
Ji Hong spoke to ease the Empress embarrassment. The Empresss face turned even redder, causing Ji Hong to look at her repeatedly.
After Wei Yi ate, he did not stay for long and brought the few imperial physicians back.
He still had to worry about those imperial physicians not rushing too fast, afraid that some imperial physician would be jolted and get hurt. The journey that took more than a day had taken more than half a day.
When the imperial physicians arrived at Xihe Vige, MO Ruyue wanted them to immediately take Su Luos pulse. However, two of the imperial physicians looked pale. It was obvious that they had not had a good journey. At this time, they probably could not hear Su Luffs pulse clearly, so she decided not to do so today.
The next morning, Wei Er invited the doctor over. MO Ruyue immediately asked the few imperial physicians to follow her to Su Luos ce. Of course, Su Luo had makeup on. After all, it was better for fewer people to know his identity.
Su Luo was also very nervous because of MO Ruyues nervous posture. In fact, he had tried countless methods over the years and secretly found countless doctors to treat him. The results were all the same, but he did not want to disappoint his sister. If not for his sister, he would not have let these people take his pulse. It would be futile.
That princess. No matter what happenster, dont be anxious. Just like you said, anything is possible, right?
Su Luo was afraid that the results of the imperial physicians and Doctor Qin taking his pulse would be the same as before. She was afraid that her sister would not be able to ept it and that her emotions would fluctuate too much, so she told her in advance.
Nio Ruyue nodded. Sit properly. Dont move and dont speak. Keep your emotions calm so that the doctors can get the correct results.
Su Luo quickly shut her mouth and sat still to stabilize her breathing.
After a few breaths, he nodded at MO Ruyue and Physician Qin, indicating that they could take his pulse.
Doctor Qin started first. He grabbed Su Luffs left hand, and an imperial physician came over to fix his right hand.
The two of them were very careful. They had already been reminded by MO Ruyue several times that they had to be very careful and not miss a single detail.
After Doctor Qin finished taking Su Luffs pulse with his left hand, he switched to the right hand with the imperial physician. Then, every imperial physician did the same. All the doctors at the scene took Su Luos pulse for about fifteen minutes. It could not be said that they were not careful.
The results of the few of them were simr. They all thought that it was almost impossible for Su Luo to give birth again.
Its almost impossible, but theres still a sliver of possibility. Well go for this sliver of possibility.
Su Luo spoke before MO Ruyue could and looked at her nervously.
MO Ruyue looked at her master and nodded.
Master, you must help him.
Nio Ruyue had just finished her sentence when tears rolled down from her eyes, giving everyone a fright.
Doctor Qin knew that Su Luo was MO Ruyues biological elder brother. He knew that his disciple had a biological elder brother, so he was happy for her. But now that he knew, he couldnt help but sigh. The siblings had been through so much trouble that it made his heart ache.
Su Luo also panicked. She hurriedly took out a handkerchief to wipe the tears from her sisters face and held her sisters hand to Doctor Qin.
Master, quickly check her pulse. She cant be so agitated!
Doctor Qin was a little stunned when Su Luo called him Master. When did he be his Master? However, his heart ached when he saw MO Ruyue crying like that..
Chapter 610 - 610: Poison Pill
Chapter 610 - 610: Poison Pill
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Seeing that there was nothing wrong with MO Ruyue, he carefully looked at MO Ruyuesplexion and saw a trace of difference. He grabbed MO Ruyues wrist, and after a while, his face was filled with happiness and me.
You really shouldnt be so emotional. Youre already more than half a month pregnant. You might have at least two babies in your stomach!
Dont worry, as long as theres a chance, I wont give up. Ill definitely cure him.
Doctor Qin thought for a moment and knew why MO Ruyue was like this.
Firstly, she felt sorry for her brother. Secondly, pregnant women tended to have extreme emotions during pregnancy. MO Ruyues emotions were very unstable, and it was more serious than usual.
This child had experienced too much!
Usually, a doctor who wasnt very skilled in the early stages of pregnancy would only be able to take a happy pulse. However, Doctor Qin was very skilled. He could even tell that MO Ruyue had more than one pulse in her stomach.
Just like how MO Ruyue had taken her own pulse before, she was not sure if she was really pregnant. She had boldly guessed that the possibility of her being pregnant was rtively high, but she was not sure.
Sometimes, because she was too tired, she would have symptoms of fake pregnancy. She had seen this before, so she had never told her family, afraid that it would not be the case in the end.
Now that Doctor Qin had confirmed it, she was sure that she was pregnant.
Really?
Before Gu Ying could finish his sentence, he was interrupted by an even louder voice.
Really, Master? There are really more than two children in my sisters stomach. Thats great!
Sister, dont worry about anything from now on. Ill be obedient and listen to Master. Ill take whatever medicine he wants me to take. Ill definitely be able to cure it. You cant randomly cry or something.
If youre worried that something bad will happen to me, how am I supposed to live with myself? I dont want to do this anymore.
I can definitely be cured. Didnt master say it too? Theres still a sliver of possibility, so lets go for it.
Su Luo was overjoyed.
He was going to be an uncle soon. Although Qin Qingting and Qin Qinghao had always called him uncle, he knew that the two children were not his sisters biological children. They were different from the ones in his sisters stomach. Of course, Qin Qingting and Qin Qinghao were both cute and sensible. He would treat them like his nephews.
In MO Ruyues stomach, he had witnessed the stage where he had grown from nothing to something. It was difficult to express his feelings. Alright, Ill take care not to have emotional ups and downs.
Big brother, you will definitely be fine.
MO Ruyues heart ached for her elder brother. She knew what her Master meant. The possibility was almost negligible, but she would not give up.
Today, because of Su Luos matter, Gu Ying had not gone to the Civil and Martial Arts College until now. He was also waiting at home for the results, afraid that a bad wife would cry. As expected, she still cried. Ruyue, dont think too much. Everything is possible, isnt it?
If youre not doing well, none of us will be doing well.
Big Brother definitely has a way. Were not in a hurry. Big Brother is still young. Everything is hopeful and possible.
MO Ruyue nodded and perked herself up. She was going to start her revenge mode.
Since she dared to poison her brother, she would naturally return the favor with poison. She would start the first battle with poison!
MO Ruyue still remembered that she was pregnant. When she was making all kinds of poisons, she would always wear protective measures, such as masks and gloves. She would change a few times a day and even disinfect herself from time to time.
The Qin family didnt know what she was doing. They only thought that she was studying Su Luos medicine. However, they didnt know that half a monthter, she had taken out quite a few medicinal powders, pills, and other things to give to Su Luo.
In order to show his active cooperation, Su Luo grabbed a handful of medicine and was about to stuff it into her mouth. However, MO Ruyue was so scared that she almost lost her soul.
Big brother, what are you doing?
Su Luo was so frightened by MO Ruyues scream that her hand stopped in mid-air and looked at her.
Arent these medicines for me to eat?
Oh, right, right. I was too stupid. I havent even asked my sister how she took these pills.
Who said this is for you to eat? This is for those heartless people to eat!
Ask the Eagle Guards to feed them or feed them directly.
Su Luo couldnt keep up with him.
MO Ruyue snapped, Even if its for you, you cant just grab it like that. How did you live so long?
Hehe, it doesnt matter if Im stupid. Its fine as long as my sister is smart. MO Ruyue knew that Su Luo was teasing her on purpose.
l dont want to wait any longer. I dont want to wait for you to slowly torture them after youve deployed those things. Lets just poison them directly and paralyze them. They cant manage or speak. Youre the only good Crown Prince left. At that time, wont the throne be rightfully yours?
She wanted to n slowly, but she really couldnt wait a moment. She wanted to catch those people and whip them a hundred times a day with a barbed whip dipped in chili and salt water.
When their wounds were rotten, he would apply some medicine on them. It would be fine as long as they didnt die. When their wounds had just scabbed over, he would continue. He would make them suffer even if they wanted to MO Ruyue recalled the methods she had seen when she was a killer. There were things that could make a persons life worse than death.
Su Luo didnt understand.
Big Brother, why are you so stupid? Can the Eagle Guards get close to those ungrateful dogs?
Only then did Su Luo understand who those ungrateful dogs were referring to.
He thought for a moment and nodded.
Not all Eagle Guards can do it, but the nine of them, Ying Yi and Ying Jiu, can do it.
Then its settled. Previously, I was thinking too much. I was still thinking of fighting with those people for the throne.
However, those people were not worthy of such a gentlemans means. They were simply inferior to beasts.
Su Luo looked at her sister and nodded vigorously.
A vicious tiger will not eat its cubs. Since they dared to treat you like that, they cant me us for being cruel.
As long as the Eagle Guards can get close to those dogs and feed them the medicine, the Nortnd will be yours!
Su Luo looked at the handful of poison pills in his hand and hurriedly put them back. Her hand kept rubbing against her body.
Are these really that useful?
You dont believe me?
Sullo immediately shook his head with a strong desire to live.
No, no, no. I believe in my sister. Her words are definitely the most trustworthy!
Then tell me if you want to do as I say!
Yes, yes, yes. Ill ask the Eagle Guards to do it.
Sullo also went all out. To hell with the art of war. With the mentality of giving it a try, he called Eagle One to Eagle Nine.
At worst, if this n failed, he could just start from the original n.
The other Eagle Guards were still a little weaker than these nine people.
Since they were going to enter the pce directly to get in touch with the main characters, they should try their best to ensure that they did not lose any manpower. Ying Jiu was the most suitable person.
Sullo told the nine Eagle Guards about the new n and asked them to think of a way to feed these poisons to the people in the Nortnd Imperial Pce..
Chapter 611 - 611: Eating Hotpot Together
Chapter 611 - 611: Eating Hotpot Together
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Su Luo suddenly turned to ask MO Ruyue.
By the way, does everyone have to take each of these medicines, or just one or a few of them?
If they have the ability, it would be best if each of them fed at least two or more.
At first, MO Ruyue didnt expect them to be able to achieve such a feat. She really couldnt understand why Big Brother had been so hypocritical to those people,
Sullo nodded and turned to Eagle Guard,Do you understand what the princess said?
Ying Yi, Ying Jiu, and the other Eagle Guards nodded in unison.
Su Luo also nodded. She distributed the pills and powder to the few of them.
After those people take these pills, they dont have to stay any longer. They have toe back immediately. Dont waste any more energy there.
You must ensure your own safety first. My big brother needs you!
Before the nine Eagle Guards left, MO Ruyue still gave them some instructions. The nine Eagle Guards felt warm in their hearts. They had never thought that they were so important!
So the princess cares about them so much, Im so touched!
They had toplete this task properly.
What the Eagle Guards were doing this time was too risky. It could not be done in a short period of time. Moreover, this matter could not be rushed.
In order to divert their attention, MO Ruyue and Su Luo picked up the things they were originally doing. For example, Su Luo had always wanted to open a hot pot restaurant in the Nortnd.
To prevent others from learning the recipe, MO Ruyue learned the recipe of the seasoning bag from theter generations.
After fiddling with all kinds of herbs, MO Ruyue added the hotpot seasoning.
She might not be able to make the hotpot seasoning very delicious, but for those who had never eaten it before, it would definitely be a top-notch taste.
Therefore, he had to get dozens of spices such as celery, onions, onions, ginger, garlic, fragrant leaves, Cassia, aniseed, pepper, and so on to make a He poured more than half of the oil into the pot and boiled it on high heat. When the oil was 80% hot, he slowly added in various spices to boil it.
When all the seasonings were thrown into the oil pan, the fragrance wafted up.
At this moment, there were only MO Ruyue and Su Luo at home, The others were all in the academy.
Su Luo was afraid that her sister would knock into it. That big pot looked scary, and there was also a big pot of oil. She was determined not to let her sister get close to it. She let her sistermand her, and he followed the instructions.
Aiya, this pot of oil doesnt even have anything in it. Just the smell alone makes it taste delicious. You should be able to eat several bowls of rice with this oil. This smell is really too fragrant!
Sullo stirred the spices in the pot at the side of the oil pan, causing them to be fully fried. The fragrance of the various spices in the pot was also stimted and fused into the oil.
When the spices in the pot were all fried, he scooped them out and added a suitable amount of soy sauce, chili sugar, and soy sauce into the oil. Because there was no gourmet powder, he added some soup stock and boiled it for a while. The spicy and fragrant hot pot seasoning was done.
Big Brother, do you think its simple? If you want to eat other vors, for example, some people cant eat spicy food, so dont add chili and pepper.
Mo Ruyue pointed at a few spices.Theres also one that doesnt need these, these, and these spices. Its fine to add less sauce, or its fine to not use the sauce. Just rece it with tomatoes.
There are also other vors that you can study on your own. In fact, its just switching the final main ingredient.
The siblings spent the entire morning in the courtyard preparing tworge pots of hotpot seasoning. One was spicy and the other was tomato.
Now that the tomatoes were ripe, Su Luo wanted to try them all. She didnt expect him to seed on his first try. He was filled with a sense of aplishment.
A group of servants waited on them at the side. They were terrified, but they could not help much. They were afraid that something would happen to their masters. After half a day, they did not do anything. Instead, they were even more tired than Su Luo.
Su Luo looked at the two big pots of sauce. It was time for lunch.
Sister, lets have hotpot for lunch.
Since you cant eat seafood, how about we eat mutton hotpot?
MO Ruyue saw her Big Brothers eagerness to try it. He had been preparing the condiments for the whole morning, so he definitely couldnt help but want to try them. She also wanted to try what the condiments he made tasted like.
Her appetite had improved a little over the past few days, especially after smelling the fragrance of the hotpot seasoning. She wanted to try it, so she ate hotpot at noon.
Before Gu Ying and the four children reached the door, they smelled the fragrance of hotpot and quickened their pace.
There was more than one hotpot today. There were actually two vors. One was spicy and fragrant hotpot, and the other was fragrant tomato hotpot.
MO Ruyue couldnt eat seafood, but they could.
Ever since thest tea tasting, Su Luo had obtained a good way to preserve seafood. Now, it was very easy for them to eat seafood.
Seafood also slowly opened up in the market in Xi Liang, bing the top food ingredient for celebrities.
It would be a great honor if there were one or two seafood dishes at a banquet.
MO Ruyue adhered to the rule that the rarer something was, the more valuable it was. She told Su Luo not to bring too much of the best seafood over at once. She wanted it to flow slowly so that it could be sold at a high price.
But then again, deep-sea seafood wasnt that easy to fish. It was warm spring here, and the flowers were blooming. They could transnt rice seedlings soon, but in the north, people were still three feet frozen.
With such thick ice and such cold water, there were not many people who could go into the sea to salvage it.
Even if there were many experts in the Eagle Guards, they couldnt just let them do whatever they wanted. No matter how powerful they were, they werent immortals.
Besides, the Eagle Guards were not professionals in fishing for seafood. Therefore, every time the seafood entered the country, it would be snatched up before it reached the princesss manor.
If it wasnt for the fact that the people who transported the seafood said that the rest was for the princess, those people would have snatched every single one of them.
Recently, Sullo had earned more than ten thousand taels of silver from selling seafood.
Why did you want to eat hotpot today?
Mmm, it smells so good!
Hotpot was the most delicious and simplest way to eat. Basically, the dishes that he wanted to eat did not need to be cooked. He just had to wash them and put them on the table.
The whole family remembered that MO Ruyue could not eat too much seafood. At most, they would let her eat a few prawns and some mild fish. They would not let her touch cold seafood such as crabs.
The family ate the delicious hotpot. When they found out that Su Luo had personally stir-fried the hotpot base, they couldnt help but give him a thumbs up.
As for Su Luo herself, perhaps because of the hotpot base that she had made herself, it tasted especially fragrant. In the end, the entire family ate until their stomachs were about to burst.
Today, the servants in the princesss manor also ate hotpot. Because there was still a lot of hotpot ingredients left at the bottom of the pot after the two big pots were filled, the servants ate hotpot together with the two big pots. Ruyue, I have to bring the students to participate in the academy examinations in two days. I might not be able toe back at night. Ill only be back in three days.
At that time, our family happened to be nting rice seedlings. I will instruct them about these things. You dont have to worry about them. Let them do whatever they want.
When the timees, Tie Zhu and the others can also help you. Ive already told them that if theres anything, dont take it on yourself, understand?
Gu Ying was like a husband who was about to go on a long journey, pulling MO
Ruyue and reminding her..
Chapter 612 - 612: Reunion Dinner
Chapter 612 - 612: Reunion Dinner
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
l know. Dont worry. There are so many people at home. Big Brother is here too. You should worry about your students.
Since they were going to the academy examination, why not let them have a good meal tomorrow? Lets eat hotpot. Only when they ate well would they have the energy to go for the examination.
As long as it was his wifes idea, Gu Ying would agree to it.
Su Luo immediately stood up and said,The spices I stir-fry are not for those students to eat.
Guying, let me tell you, you can do it yourself. Those are all your students.
They will be giving you face if they go out. As the dean, shouldnt you put on a show and show the students how good you are to them? Only then will they feel Dean Xues love for his son!
Students are also children.
Su Luo was afraid that the two pots of seasoning that he had worked so hard to make would be given away.
His nervous expression made everyone in the courtyardugh.
Big Brother, dont worry. I dont want the seasoning you stir-fried. Ill stir-fry it myself. The taste of my stir-fried food isnt inferior to yours.
As he spoke, the two of them started topare. Su Luo insisted that Gu Ying stir-fry a pot of it to see who tasted better.
In the end, the princesss manor still ate hotpot at night. Of course, the taste was still as good as before.
The students who were preparing to take the exam two dayster had eaten the hotpot made by their dean the night before. They were all in tears.
Firstly, it was too delicious. Secondly, it was spicy. Thirdly, he was a little touched.
Regardless of whether they were faking it or not, Gu Ying was quite satisfied.
Gu Ying brought the students to participate in the academy examinations, and the area around West River Vige had already begun nting seedlings.
Su Luo had nothing to do at home and followed MO Ruyue to the fields. Seeing the people bending over and working hard in the paddy fields made his blood boil. He suddenly squatted down, rolled up his pants, and took off his shoes. He insisted on going into the paddy fields and learning how to transnt rice seedlings from the old vige chief.
The vigers did not know Su Luffs exact identity, but they could tell that he was the son of a rich family.
However, Su Luo had never put on airs in the vige. She would even get along with the young men in the vige. When she saw the women, she would also call them sister-inw, aunt, and aunt. She was good-looking, and the people in the vige liked her very much.
In the beginning, when she saw that he didnt know how to transnt rice seedlings, she taught him step by step.
MO Ruyue, who was standing on the ridge of the field, felt a sour feeling in her heart when she saw how happy her big brother was. She would definitely cure her big brothers infertility and let him give birth to a child. Then, she would nurture him well. After passing the throne to the child, she would let her big brother move here to live with her.
She could feel that her brother liked the life here. After all, the smile on his face couldnt be fake.
However, it was not an easy task for her brother to hand over a country to others and get out on his own.
Big Brother was someone who cared about the world. He was especially concerned about farming. He probably wanted the farmers in the Nortnd to live such a life one day.
It seemed that he had to increase the cotton nting area this year. He had to talk to Ji Hong about this.
The cotton in the country was not that scarce at the moment. If they grew too much and could not use it up, they could sell it to Big Brother and ask him to exchange it with the seafood that was overflowing over there.
Not only did MO Ruyue n to help the peasants of the Nortnd solve their hunger and hunger, but half a monthter, hotpot suddenly appeared in the Imperial City of the Nortnd overnight.
This hotpot restaurant had just opened and had not attracted anyones attention. The shopkeeper had asked him to cook a pot at the entrance of the restaurant. In less than half a day, it had attracted many onlookers.
In the cold weather, the young and old men who had nothing to do wanted toe out and have some fun. When it was time for dinner, they wanted to find a good restaurant to see if there was any fresh game to eat. Suddenly, they smelled something that made their appetite increase.
The people who liked to eat came looking for the taste. When they reached the front, the fresh fragrance was even stronger. It was a taste that they had never tasted before. The people who passed by couldnt help but stop and look. Some people directly entered the shop.
There were always two things, and gradually, there were more people.
Waiter, give me a serving of this!
Alright, sir. Pleasee in first Waiter, what new dish is that?
How do I eat it?
Sir, you have good taste. This is the new hotpot that our inn has introduced. Its eaten like this
Waiter, bring me a small pot of that bubbling soup to try!
Spicy hotpot was much more popr in the northern country than the non-spicy ones. This was because the weather in the northern country was freezing. Eating a hot pot in the middle of winter and adding whatever dishes one wanted to eat would make one sweat all over after eating it in the cold weather. It was extremely refreshing!
The hot pot that was not spicy had almost no sales.
After Su Luo received the report, she discussed it with MO Ruyue and decided to sell it elsewhere in the future. However, it was only a follow-up. For now, they would focus on the spicy hotpot ingredients.
When the Second Prince of the Nortnd learned that a hotpot restaurant had suddenly appeared in the Imperial City and that it was full of business untilte at night, he had an idea.
He had never been able to find out who opened it, so he simply sent someone to cause trouble.
In this Imperial City, there was nothing that he could not obtain. If he really couldnt get it, then he would destroy it. No one could get it.
Today was the first day of the Lunar New Year. It was the day when the Emperor of the Northern Kingdom would go to the Empress ce to have a reunion dinner with all his sons.
The Empress of the Nortnd had already prepared for it. The first and fifteenth of every month were the days when the Emperor would eat at her ce. He would also stay here at night. This was her dignity as the Empress.
As for the Empress, in order to show her magnanimity, she would always invite all of the Emperors sons toe. They would have a reunion dinner together to show that she was virtuous and virtuous. She could also show that she was a mother in front of the Emperors other concubines and sons.
On the surface, even if he was not her son, he treated her equally. Therefore, the Emperor had always been quite satisfied with this Empress.
At the royal banquet, the Empress revealed a motherly smile as she greeted her biological and non-biological sons and ate the dishes she had carefully prepared today.
Of course, she couldnt have prepared it herself. It was just that the dishes she ordered were made by the imperial kitchen.
Mother, could this be the hot pot that is popr in the Imperial City?
The Second Prince pointed at the two hot pots made of pure gold that were bubbling on the table. He had never seen them before, and it seemed very strange.
The Second Prince was born from the Empress. In fact, he had long considered himself as the Crown Prince, and no one had thought of the real Crown Prince, Sullo.
On this day of reunion, no one mentioned him, as if he didnt exist.
All the princes present thought that this person was already dead.
The Third Prince was the son of the Imperial Concubine and had always been at odds with the Second Prince. However, on the surface, they were still brothers, and the two of them had their own factions supporting them.
Among the princes, the second prince and the third prince fought the most fiercely.
Second Imperial Brother, havent you tasted it yet?
As far as I know, Second Imperial Brother has always been the leader of the capital. Whatever good food and drink there is, it cant escape Second Imperial Brother.
Second Brother had yet to try this hotpot. It was called a spicy hotpot.
Ordinary people would not dare to eat it. The spiciness was really strong..
Chapter 613 - 613: Voting
Chapter 613 - 613: Voting
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Since Third Royal Brother said it was so good, then you must like it very much. I want to see how spicy it is.
The Second Prince tasted the mutton and said expressionlessly, Thats all.
The Third Prince immediately revealed a disdainful expression and pointed at the te of dipping sauce in front of him.
This hotpot has to be eaten with this. The spiciness in the hotpot is indeed nothing.
As he spoke, the Third Prince picked up a piece of cooked mutton with his chopsticks and dipped it into the sauce in front of him. He immediately had a satisfied expression.
The other people saw that although the two of them were at loggerheads, they were also eating quite happily. All of them raised their chopsticks and faced each other.
Suddenly, the Third Princes expression changed drastically. It was as if he was suffering from an unbearable abdominal pain. He did not even put down his chopsticks properly and dropped them to the ground. The tes in front of him also fell to the ground due to the pain.
This scene shocked everyone present. It was obvious that they had been poisoned.
Summon the Imperial Physician!
The Empress expression was very bad, let alone the Emperor.
The Empress subconsciously nced at her son, the Second Prince.
This matter couldnt have been done by her son, right? This child was really too much. How could he do such a thing at this time? Even if it had nothing to do with him, it was definitely rted to him. She didnt know what the emperor was thinking. After all, she was the one who prepared this reunion dinner.
The Empress secretly med her son for bing more and more impatient.
In a short while, several imperial physicians came over. However, before they could get a result from checking the Third Princes pulse, all the princes present had unbearable abdominal pain and their faces were purple. Their lips also began to turn ck and they fell to the ground.
Before they could recover from their shock, even the Emperor and Empress were no exception. This time, the dozen or so imperial physicians present were so shocked that their souls and spirits were all gone!
Who could tell them what the hell was going on?!
Could it be that today was the day they died?!!
When the pce maids and eunuchs in the hall saw this, they were so frightened that they could not stand still and all fell to the ground.
What was going on?
They didnt want to die!
All the masters fell to the ground one after another. There was no one in charge. In the end, a young eunuch was clever and went to invite the imperial concubine.
When the young eunuch arrived at the Imperial Consorts pce, he was even more frightened, because the Imperial Consort had also been affected!
After the Eagle Guards finished their work in the Nortnd Imperial Pce and saw that all the people were poisoned, they sprinkled two kinds of powder. The Princess said that inhaling the two kinds of powder was also possible. This way, it would definitely be safe.
Eagle One was very satisfied with the results of their mission and gestured for them to retreat.
At the same time, the Imperial Guards still discovered the traces of the Eagle Guards, and both sides began an intense battle.
The Eagle Guards remembered MO Ruyues teachings. Eagle One did not speak and gestured for his brothers to retreat quickly.
They were called Eagle Guards, and they were not for nothing. All of them were skilled in Qinggong. They might not be able to say anything in other aspects, but in terms of Qinggong, no one dared to im to be first in front of them.
The Eagle Guards saw that the Imperial Guards were getting more and more, so they did not continue to fight. They only wanted to escape. Soon, the Imperial Guards could not find their figures. It was unknown which direction they had escaped in.
For a moment, the entire Nortnd Imperial City fell into a state of panic. All the masters who could govern the country had been poisoned at the same time. How terrifying was this!
There was an imperial physician who was more proficient in poison medicine, but he could not do anything after looking at it for a long time.
This was because these masters had been poisoned with at least two types of poison, and they were all poisons that he had never seen before.
The imperial physicians discussed and tried all kinds of methods, but they discovered that the poisons in a persons body could not be removed at the same time. If one poison was removed, the remaining poison might immediately cause the poisoned person to die.
When they tried to detoxify the poison together, they found that more than two antidotes woulde together and produce a new poison. It could not be described as tricky. It was simply a poison that could not be cured!
In this situation, no one dared to do anything and could only watch.
The imperial physicians heaved a sigh of relief because it was hard to tell whether they would live or die. Moreover, they were all unconscious. No one would sentence them to death now.
This matter couldnt be left like this. These imperial physicians had no choice but to gather all the ministers to the pce.
When the officials saw the unconscious Emperor and Empress, they were all headless chickens, not knowing what to do.
There was no need to attend the morning court session anymore. They couldnt even choose a regent.
Taba Jian had always been very suspicious. Even the family of thete Empress who had helped him ascend the throne had been exterminated by him. He had not even spared the infant in swaddling clothes, let alone the Prince who had dominated the court at that time,
Taba Jian had also be the emperor because he had fought his way out of his brothers. Now, those brothers were all gone.
The one or two kings who were still alive were either too old to walk or had just been born. The younger ones had already entered the earth when they fought with Taba Jian for the throne.
Otherwise, when the Northern Kingdom and the Western Liang Kingdom were at war, they would not have sent a Crown Prince to the war. Although sending the Crown Prince to war was the result of a few princes fighting for power, the biggest reason was that there was no real talent in the Northern Kingdom.
So now that such a major event had happened, there was no one in the pce who could make decisions.
A country could not live without a ruler for a day. If other countries knew that the Nortnd was in a mess now, would there still be the Nortnd?
The ministers discussed for a whole day. Finally, someone remembered that not all the masters in the Northern Kingdom had fallen. There was still a Crown Prince in Xiliang!
We have to go to Xi Liang as soon as possible and bring the Crown Prince back!
Of course, there were also voices of opposition.
The Crown Prince is going to Xi Liang to resolve the war agreement between the two countries. If we rashly bring the Crown Prince back now, it will inevitably be discovered by Xi Liang.
The voices of opposition were immediately suppressed by the voices of approval.
Inappropriate?
You mean you want the Nortnd to continue like this?
The ministers who agreed stood up one after another, using the ministers who opposed them of having bad intentions. Now that the country was in danger, they were simply muddle-headed to still think about the battle for the throne!
If it really doesnt work out, send the imperial grandson to rece the Crown Prince. Well talk about other things after the Crown Prince deals with the matters in the north.
This is also a solution.
Many of the ministers were restless, thinking that this was the best time to seize power, but they did not have any useful people in their hands.
Even though the Emperor and the Princes were all poisoned and unconscious, the Imperial Guards in the pce swore to protect the Imperial Pce. Those ministers who had disloyal hearts would only have a slim chance of survival if they wanted to fight.
Moreover, the Northern Kingdom still had a crown prince who was still alive. If the crown prince came back from the Western Liang Kingdom, that could be a legitimate person who ascended the throne. Those ministers who were ready to move had to suppress their hearts and wait for the consequences.
Many ministers thought about it and decided that it was good to bring the Crown Prince back. The Crown Princes mediocre aptitude was still very easy to control. At most, she would marry her daughter to him. When her daughter gave birth to the Crown Prince, the world would still belong to their family!
Moreover, this was a good way to do things. Just like the current situation, when the emperor became the previous emperor, the current situation would be history. History could repeat itself!
The ministers voted and the Prime Minister took the lead to change the Crown Prince back to Xi Liang.
The emperors grandson was the second princes eldest son. Even if the second princes wifes family did not agree, there was nothing they could do.
At the same time, the entire Imperial City of the Nortnd was on high alert. The people on the streets were cleared, and the Imperial City was heavily guarded. The gates were also strictly guarded, and no one was allowed to enter or leave. Every household was searched for the traitor.
The Eagle Guards and the rest could not be found, they had probably already entered Xi Liang..
Chapter 614 - 614: Whose Eagle Are You?
Chapter 614 - 614: Whose Eagle Are You?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
On Su Luffs side, she ate hotpot in a variety of ways every day. MO Ruyue, Doctor Qin, and a few other imperial physicians had studied and formted several prescriptions together. There were even medicinal baths.
Su Luos poison had been umting for a long time, and her body had even be immune to it. It was not so easy to get rid of it in a short period of time.
Doctor Qin was worried about Su Luo because of MO Ruyue. After the imperial physician returned to the capital, he would stille over every day to take Su Luffs pulse and discuss with MO Ruyue about the medicine for half a day.
Su Luo had to soak in the medicinal bath twice a day. The process was actually very painful, but he always smiled after leaving the room and pretended that nothing had happened, afraid that MO Ruyue would feel sorry for him.
The sky was dark now, and antern was hung in the courtyard.
Su Luo had just finished her evening bath. Her face was pale and a little weak. When she saw her sistering over, she quickly smiled and said, Ah! This medicinal soup is reallyfortable!
Then give big brother another bucket tomorrow.
Su Luffs expression immediately darkened. Theres no need for that
However, his pale face couldnt be hidden under the dim light. MO Ruyue was sad, but she had a smile on her face.
Suddenly, a few people appeared in the courtyard. The guards immediately surrounded MO Ruyue and Su Luo to protect them.
Protector beast!
Many people rushed in from outside the house, even the hidden Eagle Guards came out.
The few people who rushed into the courtyard knelt down. Your subordinate did not fail your mission!
When the guards realized that it was their own people, they heaved a sigh of relief.
MO Ruyue and Sullo had just discovered that it was the Eagle Guards.
If theres nothing else, you can leave.
MO Ruyue waved her hand and the guards dispersed, leaving only the Eagle Guards who had returned.
Doctor Qin saw that those people obviously wanted to say something important to Su Luo and MO Ruyue. He felt that it was not convenient for him to listen, so he took the initiative to leave.
MO Ruyue saw that only the seven Eagle Guards had returned. Where are the other two?
Ying Yi quickly reported the process and results of their mission. The other two used the cosmetics that MO Ruyue had given them to disguise themselves and stay behind to observe the situation. They would then add some poison if necessary.
Nio Ruyue and Su Luo were quite happy when they heard this. They didnt need to guess to know what would happen in the northern country.
Big Brother, I think you have to be prepared to return to the Nortnd at any time.
When the Eagle Guards returned, it was already dark. It waste now, so Su Luo told MO Ruyue to rest first. She had to sleep first before making any ns the next morning.
MO Ruyue was also sleepy. She would definitely be able to sleep well tonight after receiving the good news.
They still had to wait for the other two Eagle Guards to report back before making the right decision. The two Eagle Guards did not make them wait too long. They also returned to West River Vige the next afternoon.
Sullo, who was originally prepared to go back by himself, waited patiently. He had to wait for the prime minister of the Nortnd to personally invite him back before he could go back.
Sister, your idea is really great. We should have thought of this earlier.
Isnt that so? I didnt think of this at first, but it shouldnt be toote now. Big brother, you must be careful when you go back alone. The Eagle Guards must follow you closely.
I have to prepare more medicinal powder for you. Anyway, if you encounter something wrong, just get someone toe back and report it. The throne is not important at all. Whats important is yourself.
Sullo nodded.
Sister, dont worry. I will take good care of myself. I wont lose a single strand of my hair. We siblings have just reunited.
1 was still thinking of waiting for you to cure me, find a wife, get married, and have a nest of children.
Su Luo deliberately said these words to dispel her sisters worries, but MO Ruyue nodded seriously.
You still have to soak the medicine I gave you twice a day, no matter what you do.
Su Luo had a bitter expression on her face. If she had known earlier, she wouldnt have said that.
MO Ruyue knew what his brother was thinking when she saw his expression. She called Ying Jiu over.
Ying Jiu.
Princess, please instruct me!
Ying Jiu knelt down on one leg when he appeared.
Get up and reply.
I have a mission for you.
After Big Brother returns to the Nortnd, you will be in charge of his medicinal baths. If he doesnt take one more bath, you will be dead meat. I will let you enjoy the itching powder every day.
At the mention of the itching powder, Ying Jiu felt ufortable.
It was all because he had identally touched that thing before, In the end, it itched for an entire day. At first, he did not understand the reason. It was so itchy that he had no choice but to beg the princess.
In the end, he found out that it was because he had touched the powder. Just thinking about it now made him feel like his soul had left his body. He hurriedly nodded and said seriously.
Princess, dont worry. This subordinate will definitely supervise Masters medicinal baths twice a day.
MO Ruyue nodded in satisfaction. Su Luo was furious as she pointed at Ying Jiu.
Whose eagle are you?
Ying Jiu didnt feel threatened at all and said righteously,The princess also has a jade tablet that canmand eagles.
Su Luo, That makes sense!
Ying Jiu saw that his master was no match for the princess, so he was even more determined to supervise his masters medicinal bath.
After some discussion, Ying Jiu became Sullos personal servant from today onwards. He followed Sullo closely to protect his safety.
MO Ruyue and Doctor Qin had given Su Luo enough medicine bags for internal consumption and medicinal baths ording to her current physical condition. She would have to bring them with her when she went back.
Moreover, in order to facilitate transportation and not take up space, many medicinal herbs were ground into powder. A portion of them had been secretly transported back to the Nortnd.
It was already half a monthter when the envoy from the Northern Kingdom arrived at Xi Liang with his grandson.
Ji Hong already knew some things about Sullo, including his infertility and the arrangements they had made for the Nortnd. Now that he had met the envoy of the Nortnd, he had a rough understanding of the situation there.
In the beginning, he was reluctant, saying that the imperial grandson could not bepared to the crown prince at all. After all, he could not be so happy.
And that envoy from the Northern Kingdom had spent a lot of effort, his glib tongue was worn out, and finally, Ji Hong agreed.
Seeing that the Emperor of Xi Liang had agreed, the envoy hoped that he could bring their Crown Prince back immediately. The situation in the Northern Kingdom was tense now, and he could not wait any longer.
Finally, a dayter, Ji Hong stopped making things difficult for him.
Sullo returned to the Nortnd from the imperial pce of Xi Liang with the envoy of the Nortnd, while the eldest grandson of the Nortnd remained in Xi Liang as a new hostage.
The Nortnd Imperial Grandson was only a three-year-old child, and Ji Hong and the others couldnt be bothered to make things difficult for such a little child.
Moreover, Ji Hong had a Crown Prince now. Seeing such a small child, he felt somepassion for him. He only locked the Nortnd Imperial Sun in the new hostages pce and sent people to guard him strictly.
The little imperial grandson was also pitiful. He had never left his mothers side at such a young age. Previously, he had rushed for half a month and had even fallen ill once in the middle. Otherwise, he would have arrived in Xi Liang earlier. His nanny was also heartbroken. After being locked up in the hostage residence, she only focused on taking care of the little imperial grandson.
On the surface, Sullo only brought a personal servant with him. To outsiders, he was also a pitiful hostage.
MO Ruyue hid in the crowd and watched Su Luo leave. She was a little reluctant to part with her..
Chapter 615 - 615: Overjoyed
Chapter 615 - 615: Overjoyed
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Gu Ying took some time toe over and hugged MO Ruyue tightly in his arms.
Its okay. Big Brother can definitely do it. He doesnt only have himself but also us. Although we cant go with him, its the same if we help him from behind.
When Gu Ying found out that his wife hade to the capital, he was very anxious. His wife was pregnant. Although her belly had not protruded yet, it was still a big belly.
This brother-inw suddenly made him even more jealous.
Fortunately, his wife had been taking good care of herself recently.
Nanny Rong and the rest had evenid a thick mat on the carriage they hade in. Wei Yi drove the carriage very steadily and did not feel any bumps at all. MO Ruyue felt drowsy as soon as she got on the carriage. She woke up at the ry station, so she did not feel tired on the way to the capital.
MO Ruyue nodded. Speaking of helping her big brother, she remembered to go to the pce. Otherwise, she wouldnt havee to the capital.
Now that his big brother had left, his heart felt empty. He wanted to go to the pce.
Didnt you bring your students to participate in the general exams? How many of them can participate? How many people can win?
Gu Ying was pulled back to his thoughts. Beloved, youre really bringing up the pot.
In the end, only five students from my academy managed to participate in the general exams.
As for how many of these five people can pass the examination, I naturally hope that all five of them can pass. Perhaps at most, one or two of them can pass the examination.
When MO Ruyue heard Gu Yings words, she felt that if one or two of them could get the lowest score, then one of them would definitely be able toplete this years mission.
Thats good. Besides, dont you have martial arts students?
By the way, dont you have to go and watch over them now? Im going to the pce. I might stay in the pce for a day or two before going home.
She wanted to discuss the matter of nting cotton with the Emperor.
Previously, he had been preparing medicine for his elder brother and then waiting for the envoy from the Nortnd, so he did not have the time toe to the capital.
Theyre not three years old. Ive already told them that tomorrow is thest day. After the exam, they should go back to the inn to wash up and have a good sleep.
Ive already booked an inn for them. Where can they find such a good principal like me?
Lets go, Ill apany you into the pce. If youre tired, 1 can carry you.
However, Gu Yings dream of carrying his wife did not seed in the end, because the moment they entered the pce, the Empress sent a carriage.
MO Ruyue and her husband went straight to the Empress Dowagers ce. The Emperor, the Empress Dowager, and the Empress met them together.
They also knew that MO Ruyue hade to talk about Su Luo, and the three of them were very concerned about Su Luffs matter.
Especially when the Empress Dowager found out that Su Luo was persecuted and could not give birth, she was so angry that she forgot to maintain her demeanor as a mother and cursed.
He knew that those ungrateful people in the Nortnd had received their retribution.
Then will your big brother be in danger when he goes back this time? The empress dowager was still a little worried.
Thank you mother for your concern, big brother will definitely do it.
Thats good.
Imperial brother, Ivee to ask you for a favor.
Ji Hong immediately sat up straight.
If you have something to say, just say it. Theres no need for us siblings to be so polite.
MO Ruyue did not stand on ceremony with Ji Hong.
Its like this. Imperial Brother also knows that its cold in the Northern Country. My big brother only wants the people of the Northern Country to have enough to eat and drink. In fact, hes not very passionate about the throne, but for the sake of those people, he has no choice but to fight. However, as his sister, I cant do anything else. I can only help him in other areas.
I want to nt cotton in all the areas suitable for growing cotton in our country and then sell these cotton to my brother.
Of course, if you dont want silver, you can ask my big brother to exchange his specialties, such as seafood, for you.
Big Brother also said that he will only provide us with enough seafood first.
If he sold the cotton to the Nortnd for free, there would be many benefits.
Xi Liang could get all the specialties of the Nortnd, and the specialties of the Nortnd could also be supplied to Xi Liang. If Xi Liang could trade with other countries for these specialties, the price would be much higher.
Although it was cold and bitter in the north, the medicinal herbs and fur in the north were really good. They had never traded with any other countries before, and it was all thanks to MO Ruyue that they were now so friendly with
Xiliang.
When Ji Hong heard that this was a business that would bring him great profits, there was no reason for him to reject it. Besides, it would be beneficial for his people to nt more cotton.
This is not a small matter.
When will it start?
I will gather the ministers to discuss this matter tomorrow.
Now that the weather in West River Vige is good enough to start sowing, its almost the same in other ces.
I will write down all the essentials of nting cotton in a while. Then, Imperial Brother, you will distribute the essentials to the officials in various ces and let them tell all these essentials to the people who grow cotton.
This way, the yield will increase by a lot.
Aftering to the pce, he had to leave food for lunch.
When they were eating, Gu Ying did not even bother to eat. He was only concerned about his wife. She peeled a prawn for her wife, picked out a fish bone for her, and scooped a bowl of soup for him,pletely ignoring the others present.
Younger Sister, I remember that you like to eat this crab very much. The taste of the food made in the pce today is quite good. Why dont you try one?
The Empress looked at Gu Ying as she spoke, implying that he should quickly peel a crab for his wife.
At the same time, the Empress was filled with envy. This was how a husband and wife should be. She also yearned for it. But her husband was busy with the affairs of the country every day. However, she was very content with the current situation. However, it did not stop her from admiring the way Guying treated MO Ruyue.
Princess cant eat these cold things now.
Gu Yings words made the three members of the royal family look at him.
What did this mean?
Only then did Gu Ying realize that he had said something wrong. He had no choice but to exin himself when he was stared at.
See, the princess is just a month pregnant. Master said that cold food cant be eaten.
They all knew that MO Ruyue had a master. They also knew that Gu Ying was referring to Doctor Qin.
However, their attention was not on his master, but on MO Ruyues one-month pregnancy. The three members of the royal family were very happy.
The way to express this happiness was to say reward three times in a row!
Reward!
Reward!
MO Ruyue
Guyings students would finish their exams tomorrow. The results would be out the day after tomorrow, and the court examinations would be held in three days at most. Therefore, MO Ruyue was prepared to go back together with Guying after he was done, This was also what the Empress Dowager and the Empress Dowager wanted.
The two women could only stay in the pce all day. At most, they would go to the Xiangguo Temple outside Emperor Cheng City to burn incense. They wanted MO Ruyue to stay in the pce for two more days to apany them and tell them about the strange things outside.
After the exam ended, the results were out very quickly. What Gu Ying did not expect was that he thought that at most one or two people would be able to pass the exam. Instead, three of them passed the exam. This was really a pleasant surprise.
And one of these three could actually participate in the court examinations.
This person was not someone else..
Chapter 616 - 616: Holding Imperial Power Alone
Chapter 616 - 616: Holding Imperial Power Alone
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When Xiong Qiu stood in front of all the officials and faced the Emperor, he was still nervous and excited.
He had won face for the Xiong Family and his father!
One had to know that once one participated in the court examination, the worst ranking would be the top three schrs. How could one not be excited!
Gu Ying was also among the civil and military officials, but he was at the end of the line. He could only enter the court because of his student, Xiong Qiu.
To be honest, among the five participants, the other four had considered the possibility. However, they had not considered Xiong Qiu. They had not expected Xiong Qiu to be the one who had fought till thest round.
It seemed like he knew too little about Bear Hill.
Xiong Qius father, Lord Xiong, had been so happy that his mouth had not closed since his son entered the pce.
Originally, he had never thought that his son would be so sessful. He thought that being able to be a schr was already enough to bring glory to him. He did not expect that the son who was publicly acknowledged by the capital would actually be able to get a schr. As expected of his son. He had simply brought shame to his father!
Lets see what the elders will say when we get back!
Usually, when he brought his son back to his hometown, those elders would always beat around the bush, saying that his son was too naughty and should be properly controlled. Now, he would let them see if his son was a silkpants!
Actually, Ji Hong quite liked Xiong Qiu. He was good-looking and had good knowledge. If it wasnt for the fact that he was too young and was afraid that he would be arrogant, he would have given him the title of a flower man.
After thinking about it, he still felt that it was not appropriate to let Xiong Qiu enter the Imperial Academy to learn and umte experience.
Thus, Xiong Qiu was ranked as a second-ss schr. Even so, the Civil and Martial Arts College that Gu Ying had run was also a hit.
It had only been established, but in the second year, there were already three schrs, two Juren, and one Jinshi.
Even in the famous academies in the capital and other ces, such results were not bad.
After the court examinations, the officials retreated, but Gu Ying was surrounded by the lords.
Congrattions to Lord Xue!
Congrattions, Lord Xue!
Lord Xiong, who was originally squeezed to the outermost edge by the officials, looked on anxiously. Why did he feel that something was wrong?
It was clearly his son who had passed the Jinshi examination, but he looked like Gu Yings son instead.
Gu Ying finally finished chatting with the officials, but he was stopped by Lord Xiong when he walked out of the crowd.
Congrattions, Lord Xue!
Gu Ying
Lord Bear was speechless. His excitement was actually led astray by those old fogeys.
Cough!
Lord Xiong coughed and smiled widely. My son has achieved what he has today. Im really grateful to Lord Xue!
It is also the result of Xiong Qius own hard work.
A father and a teacher. The two of them went back and forth, praising each other to the core before ending. They only saw the people beside them feeling jealous and envious.
Immediately, many people decided to send those who werent good at home and refused to be disciplined to Gu Yings Civil and Martial Arts College.
Xiong Qiu usually treated Gu Ying like a mouse meeting a cat. In fact, he was very grateful to Gu Ying. He knew how mischievous he was. It was all thanks to Gu Yings guidance that he could have his current results.
Only then did he realize how good he was in the eyes of the dean!
He first parted ways with his ssmates, then knelt down in front of Gu Ying and kowtowed three times to express his respect and respect for his teacher, and more importantly, his gratitude.
Gu Ying quickly went forward and pulled Xiong Qiu up with both hands.
In the future, you must study hard in the Imperial Academy. In the future, you must serve the country and the people.
I trust you!
Thank you, teacher. I will remember your teachings!
Ji Hong felt a little sour as well. Gu Ying was really lucky. However, his own strength could not be underestimated. When he thought about how the talents he had educated were all used by him in the end, he felt more at ease.
Many influential people in the capital expressed their desire to send their children to the Civil and Military Academy.
There were also many people who asked the Xiong Family father and son about the various aspects of the Civil and Martial Arts Institute, such as whether the food and lodging were good or not, and whether the education was definitely not a problem. Some people even felt that their own useless children should be sent there because they did not know how to live at home and lived a luxurious life.
However, Xiong Qiu mentioned how delicious their school canteen was and how good the school was. He directly said that those parents who were of the right age to be sent to the academy were even more moved.
He made up his mind to pack up the children and send them to the Civil and Military Academy in Xihe Vige.
Gu Ying naturally had no reason to reject the offer. After informing Ji Hong and obtaining his approval, he got the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency to put up a few recruitment notices for gentlemen in various fields.
This time, he didnt even need to personallye and ask for a teacher. Many teachers would take the initiative to look for him when they saw Gu Yings recruitment notice. This was because the Civil and Martial Arts Institute was considered famous now. If he became a teacher there, his reputation would naturally not be buried.
Didnt teachers like them want fame and fortune?
If Xihe Vige could produce three Elementary Schrs, two High Schrs, and one Jinshi every year, they would be great schrs in the near future.
Today was the day that Gu Ying and MO Ruyue were going back to their residence. When they left, many officials smiled and watched Gu Ying and his entourage leave. They were d that they were smart and had foresight. Because they knew that Gu Ying and Princess Ming Yue were going to leave today, they packed up their children and grandchildren in advance and sent them to West River Vige with Gu Ying.
Look at how many people want to go. If we dont follow today, the academy might not be able to take in so many people.
Exactly!
The people who heard it regretted not thinking of this! If they reacted, they would go home and pack for their children. If they sped up, they might be able to catch up with the team.
After Sullo returned to the Nortnd, the entire imperial city was indeed in a mess. It was a little too much to say that there was no leader in the group of dragons. It was more appropriate for the wolf group to be without a wolf king.
Without the Wolf King, the rest felt that they could be the Wolf King and were eager to try.
As soon as he returned to the Imperial City, Sullo didnt even have the time to say anything. A few of the officials already showed signs of wanting to control him. He could see it clearly and didnt even have the time to look at him.
Combined with the Eagle Guards cooperation, he obtained the waist token of themander of the Imperial Guards in the pce. The Tiger Tally was originally in his hands, but he was sent to Xiliang before he could hand it over to the Emperor. With the military power in hand, Sullo was able to easily control the Imperial City.
The Empress and the Imperial Concubine could not stand the situation where Su Luo held the imperial power alone and wanted to join forces to suppress him.
Su Luo didnt panic at all. She gave the order,Men, take down all the traitors who have ulterior motives and are plotting to usurp the throne!
The imperial guards were originally only loyal to the royal family. Su Luo was now the only person who could order them around. The token that could order them around was also in Su Luffs hands. Seeing that Su Luo had spoken, she took down the empress and the imperial concubines party.
When the empress and imperial concubine saw that Sullo had really sent the imperial guards over to capture them, they panicked and raged. Their eves were about to spew out fire.
Crown Prince, have you ever thought of the consequences of doing this?
The state uncle raised his head high and red at Su Luo..
Chapter 617 - 617: Tyrant
Chapter 617 - 617: Tyrant
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Isnt the Crown Prince afraid of chilling the hearts of the ministers by doing this?
The imperial concubines elder brother also looked at Sullo as if he was looking at trash.
Su Luo gave a fake smile, At a time like this, she still wanted to threaten him. She really didnt know how to write the word death.
What consequences? What chill?
Why do 1 hear you saying that 1 should abdicate as the Crown Prince? Who do you think is suitable?
When the ministers saw that Su Luo really couldnt be helped up, they felt that Su Luos suggestion wasnt impossible. Su Luffs face no longer had any intention of joking.
The position of Crown Prince is too small. Why dont I just give the throne to you? Is this the way to not regret it?
Humph!
You colluded with foreign thieves to usurp the throne, and you still have to serve them!
Sullos previous words had hit the nail on the head, but Sullo continued to say that they wanted to usurp the throne in front of all the civil and military officials. This was a huge crime.
Who dared to admit it?
No one dared to admit it in public, and they had to pretend to be so angry that their faces turned red.
Take him away and throw him into the imperial prison to await his punishment.
The Empress and the Imperial Concubine wanted to say something, but they were already gagged and taken away.
How could this happen all of a sudden? They hadnt even spoken yet.
Su Luo wouldnt give them a chance to deny it. A few meaningful ones were all thrown into the imperial prison.
The other people in the imperial court who were restless saw that Sullo was actually acting out of character. He was no longer weak and could be bullied. Instead, he had be so ruthless. They all shrank into their turtle shells to wait and see.
As for the antidote for the Emperor and the other princes. Sullo naturally
didnt have it. When MO Ruyue made those poisons, she didnt make the antidote. As for whether they would die or live, it would depend on their own lives.
Of course, on the surface, Sullo still had to put on a show for the ministers. All imperial physicians in the Imperial Academy of Medicine, listen up.
The imperial physicians in the Imperial Academy of Medicine knelt down. Please give your orders, Crown Prince!
This crown prince orders all of you to do your best and think of all ways to cure the emperor and his brothers.
As for the Empress and the Imperial Consort, he did not say that it was up to them whether they wanted to be treated or not. He wished that they were dead.
His mothers death back then was also rted to those two.
He felt that he could add some itching powder or something so that they could enjoy the rest of their lives.
All the ministers saw Su Luffs thunderous methods. Some of them proposed to let Su Luo take charge of the northern country. He was the crown prince to begin with. If the emperor was not good, they would even support him to take over.
In the hearts of many ministers, they had already positioned Sullo as the new emperor of the Nortnd.
When the Empress and Imperial Concubine learned of this, they were extremely furious in the heavenly prison. They even directly cursed, revealing the fact that Su Luo was inhuman and had no children.
Sullo didnt panic at all. Since they wanted to die so badly, he would directly sentence them to death for offending their superiors!
Su Luo didnt deal with them as soon as she returned. She kept them alive to warn the others. He would take it slow. If anyone refused to ept him, there was no need for them to stay in the Nortnd.
However, what happened in the north still made the other three countries, other than Xi Liang, see some clues and were ready to make a move.
Sullo gathered the ministers to discuss who would lead the troops to resist the foreign enemies.
None of the ministers were silent. No one wanted to give up their families to go to war, and it was the kind that would definitely kill them.
However, these people had never put him, the Crown Prince, in their eyes. They had been used to it for more than twenty years and felt that he was just a paper tiger. They pretended not to hear this life-and-death situation.
Su Luo didnt expect them to volunteer at all. Just as she was about to call out names, someone suddenly stood up.
Im willing to go!
Su Luo took a look. He remembered that this Lord Yan was the son of his uncles student.
With Lord Yan leading the way, three more people stepped forward. They were all old friends of his maternal grandfathers family.
Su Luo still feltforted. This meant that he was not alone.
He nodded. As long as these people were sincere, he would put them in an important position.
South, East, and Central. Lord Yan, take 30,000 men to reinforce the Southern Pass.
East Pass and Central Pass are
He looked at the turtles that were hiding and chose the two that he was most unwilling to go to.
Before the two ministers could think of a way to object, they heard Su Luo say,The country is in danger. Those who disobey will be killed!
The two ministers trembled. Even if they didnt want to, they could only bite the bullet and go.
However, Sullo wouldnt believe such a person. He had pointed them out to intimidate them. Among the soldiers he had brought with him, he had selected three who were more capable of blocking things and went to the border to support them as deputy generals.
At the same time, he sent a letter to Xi Liang, asking for reinforcements.
He had already discussed this with Ji Hong before he returned to the Northern Kingdom. If they asked for help, he would definitely send troops to help.
The other three kingdoms were still on their own and had no ns to form an alliance. They only had amon goal, but they were still suspicious of each other. They did not expect the two kingdoms of the northwest to have formed an alliance, so they did not dare to advance too rashly. However, the Northern Kingdom and the Xi Liang Kingdom did not intend to let go of a good opportunity to beat up the other three kingdoms.
The other party had alreadye to their door. Moreover, there would be a second time, or countless times. This time, they would not be afraid of them. Would they leave them to go back and recuperate before they came back?
Therefore, before the three empires could find an alliance, the two empires in the northwestunched a surprise attack, catching them off guard and forcing them to retreat. In the end, they had to cede territory and pay reparations.
Of course, Sullo generously gave more than half of thend to Xi Liang.
Without Xi Liangs help, his Northern Kingdom would have ceased to exist under the attack of the three countries. He was still clear about which was more important.
Ji Hong saw that he had only helped the Nortnd a little and had already
received such a huge benefit. He decided to have a closer rtionship with the Nortnd in the future. He wished that the other three countries would attack the Nortnd again so that he could obtain more benefits.
However, the Three Kingdoms werent stupid. After being beaten up once, they had already ceded their territory and paidpensation. Would they be stupid enough to charge forward again? It was simply impossible.
The Eastern, Southern, and Central Three Kingdoms had also discovered the reason why Xi Liang would help the Northern Kingdom. Now that the three Kingdoms were at a disadvantage, they were really afraid that the two Kingdoms would work together to destroy them one by one.
By the time the three kingdoms thought about forming an alliance with the other two kingdoms, it was already toote.
The Northern Kingdom and Xi Liang also rushed to send secret envoys to the three countries before the three countries formed an alliance to form an alliance with them one by one.
The Northern Kingdom and the Xi Liang Kingdom were the tworgest countries among the five countries. Now that these two countries had formed an alliance and came to rope them in, how could they be unwilling? They did not dare to be unwilling.
When the turmoil between the five countries stopped, it was the turmoil within their own countries. Sullo had used a month to take full control of the imperial power of the Northern Kingdom and had already ascended the throne. There was no other reason than that the old Emperor of the Northern Kingdom had been poisoned and did not have much time left. Even if the other princes did not die, they would not be as legitimate as Sullo as the Crown Prince.
As for the fact that Sullo couldnt be humane, it was self-evident because on the first day of Sullos ascension to the throne, he had already doted on the newly presented beauty.
It was also because the heavens were helping Sullo. After returning to the Nortnd, he still insisted on taking two medicinal baths a day. After 20 days, he could already regain his glory.
As for whether he could make his concubine pregnant, that was up for discussion.
Even if he couldnt, the ministers couldnt do anything to him. The current Sullo was a tyrant in their eyes.
However, to truly define him as a tyrant was somewhat unjustified. Ever since Sullo ascended the throne, he had immediately rectified the food and clothing problems of the people in the Nortnd, and it had been very effective.
In the eyes of the people, Sullo was simply the Holy Lord!
Chapter 618 - 618: Giving Birth
Chapter 618 - 618: Giving Birth
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Seven monthster, Su Luo had be the most beloved Emperor in the hearts of the people of the Northern Kingdom. He loved the people like his beloved son and was supported by the people. His throne was even more stable than the throne when Taba Jian was still in power.
This was because this emperor had truly done it. He had let the people experience an emperor who loved his people as if they were his beloved sons.
Themoners were deeply grateful and often secretly sent what they thought was the best to the Imperial City. These were all for the Emperor.
Of course, the servants in the pce did not dare to take these things to the emperor to eat, but they could not throw them away either. These were all food. If they casually threw them away and the emperor found out, they would turn around.
Sullo still knew about this matter and asked that person to distribute those things to the people who could not eat.
As the main source of food for the Nortnd was grain and cotton, in reality, most of themoners could eat and wear warm clothes. MO Ruyue had also given the essentials and techniques of growing cotton to Sullo. The Nortnd could also open up more wastnd to grow rice and cotton. He believed that in another year or two, all themoners in the Nortnd, as long as they were notzy or gluttonous, would be able to eat and wear clothes.
The other three countries did not dare to have any other thoughts because of the pressure of these two countries. The main reason was that they also had trade with the two countries and could get what they needed. The peaceful days of the country and the people were all loved by all the people.
In the Nortnd Imperial Pce.
Sullo took a few scrolls and went to Tuoba Jians pce.
Although Tuoba Jian couldnt move, he was already awake. However, he was paralyzed by the poison and couldnt speak or move. He was even more haggard. Hey on the bed and couldnt die, but he lived in pain.
The empress, the imperial concubine, and the other princes had all died one after another. Only Taba Jian was still alive. It was also because Su Luo had used a lot of medicine to keep him alive.
He wanted him to live in such pain.
Imperial Father, your son hase to see vou.
Tuoba Jian, who was originally lying on the bed waiting for death, heard Sullos voice. His eyes became ferocious, and his entire body trembled as he let out a berating sound from his throat.
Imperial Father, you must be very happy that I came to see you. Theres no need to be so excited.
I was a little busy a while ago and didnt have time to visit you. Now that Im free, I came to visit you. Look what I brought for you.
Su Luo opened the painting he had brought. On it was a woman with a sweet smile. She didnt wear any makeup, but she was still so beautiful and moving.
Father, do you know her?
You dont know him, but you should be familiar with his face.
Sullo didnt seem to see Tuoba Jians frightened andplicated expression.
After that, Ta Ba Jian calmed himself down. He looked at the woman in the painting with a hint of gentleness and regret.
Su Luo looked at him with disdain.
Dont tell me you think this is Imperial Mother. Indeed, she looks very simr to Imperial Mother, but she is not Imperial Mother. Dont look at her with your dirty eyes.
Shes my sister!
Sullo looked at Taba Jian, who had a look of disbelief on his face.
Back then, when Consort Mother went missing for two years because of what you did to the Zu family, she went to Xi Liang. After she gave birth to her younger sister in Xi Liang, she ced her in a farmhouse.
Consort Mother would rather have her grow up in a peasant family suffering than have her stay in this cold pce.
Sullo looked at the incredulous Tuoba Jian.
Haha, but now she is living very well, blissfully, and has a husband who loves her dearly. Even the Emperor, Empress and Empress Dowager of Xi Liang Country love her dearly and treat her like their own child.
Her younger sister had suffered in the first half of her life, but she was a blessed person. From now on, she would have endless blessings.
Tuoba Jian didnt believe it in his heart, but when he looked at Sullos expression, he realized that what he said seemed to be true.
Impossible!
You must be lying to me!
You just want to anger me to death!
Yes, that must be the case!
Taba Jian shook his head desperately. However, because he was paralyzed and
couldnt move, his movements were very small. If one didnt pay attention, one wouldnt be able to notice it. However, Sullo saw it and understood the meaning in his eyes.
You dont believe me?
He had to believe it even if he didnt want to.
She looks exactly the same as Imperial Mother. When I saw her back then, I knew she was my younger sister.
Younger Sister is very smart. It was also because of Younger Sister that I was able to obtain the throne so quickly.
Back then, you wanted to exterminate the entire Su family and even your mother. However, you did not expect to be defeated by the Su family bloodline.
The poison in my body has also recovered. I will also have an heir.
Dont worry, I wont let my children have the surname Tuoba. My children will have the surname Su.
Taba Jian could not speak or move. He could not do anything. He could only stare at Su Luo with wide eyes, wishing he could see two holes in him.
You know that Im about to recover, and now Im the emperor of the Nortnd. Are you especially disappointed?
Even if you dont believe that the poison in my body is about to recover, dont worry. Even if I cant have an heir in the end, I will pass the throne to my sisters child.
The throne of the Nortnd still belongs to the Su family. You didnt expect this, did you?
Do you regret not killing me back then?
However, its useless for you to regret it now.
Dont worry, I wont kill you. No matter what, your blood flows in my body. Im also your son. I cant kill my father.
Otherwise, what difference would there be from you?
I really hate having that bit of your blood flowing through my veins. Its good that you dont have any children. If thats the case, youll really have no descendants.
Su Luo carefully rolled up MO Ruyues portrait.
Have a good rest.
Su Luo looked at Taba Jians trembling and incontinent appearance and felt both happy and sad. However, thisplicated emotion onlysted for an instant.
Men, Retired Emperor needs to change his clothes.
A few eunuchs immediately came in from outside to help Tuoba Jian change.
Sullo returned to his bedroom and waited for the news that the Eagle Guards would return to bring his sister to give birth.
He did not want to anger Taba Jian today, but when he thought of his sisters torturousbor, he felt very ufortable that he could not be there.
He couldnt let him be the only one who was anxious. He had to find someone to share it with him, so Tuoba Jian became his trash can.
C -Xihe Vige
In the princesss manor outside West River Vige, everyone was on tenterhooks. The princess was giving birth in the delivery room.
Gu Ying was like a headless fly in the courtyard in front of the delivery room, walking from east to west and then from south to north. Behind him was a group of people, Qin Qingyan, Qin Qingshuang, Qin Qinghao, and Qin Qingting.
Qin Qingyan and Qin Qingshuang were no longer the skinny bean sprouts. The eleven-year-old Qin Qingyan was already 1.6 meters tall, and Qin Qingshuang was only half a head shorter than Qin Qingyan. The six-year-old
Qin Qinghao and Qin Qingting were also more than 1.2 meters tall.
The four children were followed by dogs, cats, and Lu.
Qin Rouwan, Qin Qingfei, and Xue Qing, who were all pregnant, were also at the side. They were looking at the long list until they felt dizzy.
Big Brother, can you guys stop spinning?
l cant stop!
The little ones looked at their elder sister and aunt.We cant stop either.
Woof woof woof woof woof!
Meh!
They couldnt stop!
Chapter 619 - 619: Triplets
Chapter 619 - 619: Triplets
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Not long after, Qin Qingfei, Xue Qing, and Qin Rouwan heard that MO Ruyue, who was giving birth desperately in the delivery room, was not making any movements. They stuck out their bellies and started to spin around with Gu Ying and the others. The courtyard was like a greedy snake, circling around and around.
MO Ruyue felt as if her soul was about to leave her body. She wondered if she would have to go back in.
She had never thought that giving birth would be so painful. It was so painful that she didnt even have the strength to scream or move.
Her fetal position was clearly positive, and she could feel it herself. It was not a difficult birth, but the children were unwilling toe out, and they were still causing her pain.
She had been in pain for six hours from the morning to the afternoon, but the child was still unwilling toe out.
In the end, Nanny Rong and Nanny Yan saw that MO Ruyue couldnt take it anymore, so they called Doctor Qin in to check MO Ruyues pulse and give her a few needles.
Good child, its okay. Master is here, Do as the midwife says.
Doctor Qin retracted the needle and turned to Nanny Rong. Call me if theres anything.
However, he did not want to hear the people in the delivery room call him in again.
Doctor Qin withdrew the needles and left. After all, he was a man.
Master, how is Ruyue? How is my wife? Is she alright?
Doctor Qin saw that Gu Yings eyes were red and just a little more painful than the average person. Who asked her to not have a baby in her stomach?
As soon as Doctor Qin finished speaking, the loud cries of a baby came from the room.
Chun Hua carried the child out to announce the good news, while MO Ru Yue continued.
The prince consort is a young master.
Gu Ying almost tripped over himself. He quickly took a few deep breaths to maintain his posture. There was absolutely no problem. Then, he carefully took the swaddling cloth.
Is Ruyue alright?
The princess is still alive.
Waaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaa aaaaaaaaaaa.aaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaa aaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaa aaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaaa
Before Chun Hua could finish her sentence, the loud cries of the second baby could be heard.
The people outside the courtyard were relieved and revealed rxed expressions.
When everyone in the room thought that MO Ruyue had already given birth, the midwife suddenly eximed in surprise.
Aiya, theres still one more!
After a short while, there was another cry that sounded weaker.
The people outside the house said,This is the birth of a third son!!!
MO Ruyue had always thought that she was pregnant with two children. Her master had always taken her pulse and said that she was pregnant with two children. In the end, three children suddenly appeared, two sons and one daughter. It was just like their father and sister back then.
MO Ruyue didnt care how many children there were. Knowing that the three children were all healthy, she fell asleep in peace.
At this time, Doctor Qin hurriedly went in and gave MO Ruyue a few injections to prevent her from being too weak and causing anyplications.
After Doctor Qin gave MO Ruyue the acupuncture, Nanny Rong and the others quickly cleaned up the scene.
After MO Ruyue was done with the acupuncture, they carefully brought her back to the bedroom.
Gu Ying personally apanied them along the way. He saw that MO Ruyue kept her eyes closed and was very flustered. He grabbed Doctor Qin and refused to let go.
Master, master, is Ruyue really alright?
Why doesnt she open her eyes and look at us?
Whats wrong with you, kid? Ive told you 800 times that I want you to give birth to three children. How can you not be tired and want to sleep?
Can you stop bothering me?
MO Ruyue was the one who gave birth to the child, but everyone felt as if they had given birth to the child as well.
Now that MO Ruyue finally had a good rest, Doctor Qin also wanted to rest for a while, He was also very tired, but Gu Ying grabbed him and refused to let him go.
Uncle and Mother are really tired. Shes just asleep. You cant be noisy now.
Qin Qingting was also worried and went in to check MO Ruyues pulse. She was sure that her mother was exhausted and was resting. When she came out, she saw her uncle holding onto Grandpa Qins hand and refusing to let go.
When Gu Ying heard everyone telling him that his wife had fallen asleep, he felt relieved.
Then, Master, you can stay in the residence and dont go back. You can go back after Ruyue is out of confinement.
Please!
Then why arent you moving aside and letting me rest? My old bones also need to rest. Im not a god!
Gu Ying also realized that he was being unreasonable.
Good, good, good. Men, quickly bring Master down and settle him down.
When Gu Ying entered the bedroom again, MO Ruyue and the three babies were already surrounded by people. He could not squeeze in at all. However, no one made a sound. They were all looking at the four sleeping mothers curiously. At most, they exchanged nces.
Qin Qingting said,Brother, look. My younger brother and sister are both like me.
Qin Qinghao,No, they look like me.
The siblings, who had always been very good, were now arguing silently.
Qin Qingshuang, who was standing behind them, knocked the two children on the head. The two of you are already so old. Can you not be so childish? They clearly look like me.
Qin Qingyan thought,Theyre like me.
At this moment, Gu Ying came over and pulled the four children away, his eyes dering his dominance.
Of course, my child is like me. How can he be like you?
Get up!
Everyone fell!
Gu Ying looked at his three children and felt extremely satisfied. He looked at the sleeping MO Ruyue with tender eyes. He was really lucky!
Nanny Rong and Nanny Yan couldnt hold it in anymore and started to chase them out.
No matter how reluctant everyone was, they had no choice but to leave.
MO Ruyue had just given birth, and the children were also newborns. The air here was not good with too many people.
When the Eagle Guards received the news that the Princess had given birth to three children, they immediately rushed back to the Nortnd.
What followed behind them were the cotton and grain that Xi Liang had traded with the Nortnd.
When the masters in the pce learned that MO Ruyue had given birth to triplets, they immediately came to reward her.
Nio Ruyue and Gu Ying felt that the weather was a little cold during the third washroom, so they did not n to hold the third washroom. After all, the children were still too young, and there were three of them.
However, the Imperial Pce had rewarded him with a set of special tools for washing the three, and had even sent a nanny from the pce to preside over
it.
He had to give her face,
In the end, they decided to have a three-way party in the house. The hall of the princesss manor was not small anyway, so it was still possible to hold a small banquet.
On the day of the third washing, several pots of Silver Frost Charcoal were lit in the hall. Of course, the windows and doors were wide open. Even so, the room was still warm.
Although MO Ruyue had given birth to three children in one go, Doctor Qin had stayed at home to nurse her back to health. After bathing for three days, she was already able to walk on her own. However, she could not sit for too long and had to go back to lie down in a while.
To everyones surprise, on the day of the third washing, the Empress, the Empress Dowager, and the Emperor, the three great nobles, actually appeared at the scene in casual clothes.
It was mainly because the Empress and the Empress Dowager wanted to see the triplets. They had never seen them before, not to mention that they were MO Ruyues children.
The Empress Dowager and Empress were both here, and Ji Hong, the Emperor, couldnt sit still any longer, so he decided to follow them.
ording to Ji Hong himself, why was he the ruler of this world, yet he had to be so cautious when he went out?
He wanted to take a few days off!
In the end, he arranged for a substitute to follow the Empress Dowager and the others out secretly.
Everyone present, including Gu Ying, recognized them and wanted to greet Ji Hong immediately, but Ji Hong raised his hand to stop them.
We are here today to participate in the Three Washing Ritual.
Since the Emperor had already said so, who could have any objections?
Chapter 620 - 620: I Just Have to Enjoy It!
Chapter 620 - 620: I Just Have to Enjoy It!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Therefore, the Emperors family of three naturally treated him with the highest courtesy and respect. Gu Ying personally received him. If it wasnt for MO Ruyues inconvenience at the moment, she would havee personally as well.
Gu Ying personally arranged seats for them and called over Nanny Yan to serve them. After all, she was more familiar with court etiquette and other aspects. Nanny Rong had to help MO Ruyue take care of the triplets.
The Empress Dowager was a little annoyed when she saw this Ming Yue needs someone right now. You called Nanny Yan over to serve us. Shes too busy.
MO Ruyue was not like others. She had given birth to three children at once, and no matter how many people she had, she would not be able to find enough.
Too
Call me Old Madam.
The empress dowager did not want others to know her identity and interrupted Gu Yings words.
Old Madam, please let Granny Yan stay here. Otherwise, I wont be at ease no matter what I do.
In front of the Empress Dowager, Gu Ying was a proper junior. He did not speak to her like he did to the Emperor.
Mother, listen to him.
I want to see my sister. Is it convenient?
As a junior, the Empress understood Gu Yings heart.
Of course, Ill take you there now.
Ill go too.
When the Empress Dowager heard that she was going to visit MO Ruyue, she couldnt sit still.
The messenger led the Empress Dowager and Empress to the main hall and let the servant girl lead them into the side bedroom.
Ji Hong looked at his mother and wife enviously. He wanted to go too.
Hua Mingliang knew Ji Hong. Seeing him attend MO Ruyues childs washing ceremony and the two noble women following him, he knew without asking that they must be the Empress Dowager and the Empress. What an honor!
He was very happy for MO Yue, which meant that Ji Hong was grateful. Just as he was about to greet Ji Hong, Ji Hong smiled and waved at him.
Sir,e here. Lets sit together.
Is this your great-grandson?
Ji Hong looked at the little boy who was being pulled by Hua Mingliang and asked.
Hua Mingliang didnt expect Ji Hong to still be the same Ji Hong from back then. He smiled as well.
Yes,
When Hua Mingliang mentioned his grandson, his face was filled with a blissful smile.
Little Treasure,e over and greet us.
Hua Mingliang paused. He had heard what Ji Hong and his family had said to Gu Ying. They definitely didnt want their identities to be known. So, what should his grandson call him? He was stumped for a moment.
Just call me Old Master.
Ji Hong thought about it for a while. ording to the seniority system of the Hua Family and MO Ruyues side, he could only let the child address him as
Old Master. Suddenly, he felt that he was very old.
Hello, Old Master!
Little Treasure tilted his head and looked at Ji Hong.
Little Treasure only said two words, but Hua Mingliang and Ji Hong understood what he meant.
Ji Hongughed out loud and was instantly healed. She pulled the jade pendant off her waist and stuffed it into Little Treasures hand.
Hua Mingliang saw that the jade pendant was too valuable and did not reject it. Ji Hong waved at him, but Little Treasure had already cleverly bowed to Ji Hong to thank him.
Thank you!
Little Treasure only knew how to say two words, but he could express himself very clearly.
Alright, study hard in the future!
Little Treasure nodded vigorously.
Today, the main characters, the triplets, were preparing for the three-bath ritual.
When MO Ruyue gave birth, Doctor Qin could tell that she was having twins, so there were three midwives present on the day of delivery. Today, the three midwives also came to wash the third child.
It just so happened that they would hold a three-way bath for the three children togetherter, and each midwife would carry one child.
First of all, they had to pay their respects respects to the Goddess of Child-endowing. She could bless the child to grow up safely and not fall sick or suffer any disasters.
After paying respects to the gods, she began to add anything into the basin. Every day, the midwife would say the relevant blessings.
Those who were generous would add gold, silver, jade, etc. into the basin.
Usually, they would add peanuts, lotus seeds, and other good things.
When everyone was adding food, they would throw it into the copper basin and it would make a crisp ding dong sound. Therefore, the basin was also called the sound basin. The midwife looked at the things that had entered the basin and said her blessings. Her eyes were even brighter.
The first to fill the basin was Ji Hongs family of three, followed by Physician Qin, Hua Mingliang, and the others.
Because they were triplets, the basin they prepared was rtivelyrge. Even though the basin was sorge, it was almost full. After adding hot water into it, they began to bathe the triplets.
As the weather was cold, she would not really put the child into the basin to wash. Besides, those things were all germy, so MO Ruyue did not want to do it. The midwife symbolically dipped her hand into the basin and touched various parts of the childs body while singing a festive and auspicious song.
The midwife looked at the gold and silver ingots in the basin. Her smile had never disappeared from the beginning. Her cheeks were probably twitching fromughing and she could not put it down.
At this moment, the triplets had stopped crying after washing up. The emperor, empress dowager, and empress dowager were surrounding them.
The main point was that it was a big problem to name the three children.
First, his surname. He had to take Guyings surname. Guyings ancestors surname was Qin, and his childrens surname was Qin. Guying had also received the Xue familys favor. Back then, he had already agreed with his adoptive parents that if he had a child, his first son would take the Xue familys surname.
In the end, MO Ruyue made the final decision. What was so difficult about it? She had given birth to three children at once!
The eldest of the three children took Guyings surname, Xue. He was indebted to the Xue family, so he was called Xue Chengen. The second and third children followed the older brothers and sisters in front of them. The older brother was called Qin Zichao, and the younger sister was called Qin Zilu.
Actually, ording to Qingting and Qinghaos names, they should be Zi Chao and Zi Mu. However, the word Mu was not suitable for naming, and it was even more unsuitable for a girls name, so he changed Mu to Lua
When Ji Hong heard the names of the three children, he waved his hand and called the chambein beside him. He whispered a few words to him, and the chambein turned around and left.
After the mother-inw finished singing the three wedding ceremonies, a eunuchs loud and clear singing sounded outside the courtyard.
The Holy Decree has arrived!
Everyone who knew Ji Hongs identity looked at him in confusion. Ji Hong smiled but didnt say anything, waiting for the eunuch toe in and announce the decree.
Princess Ming Yue
As usual, he first praised MO Ruyue. Princess Ming Yues daughter, Qin Zilu, is specially conferred the title of Princess Chaoyang!
After the imperial edict was read out, Gu Ying hugged his daughter and kowtowed to thank the Emperor for epting the edict. He even had the intention to kneel down in Ji Hongs position.
Those who didnt know what was going on would only think that he was kowtowing to the imperial edict.
The eunuch received Ji Hongs signal. How could he let Gu Ying kneel with the young princess in his arms? He quickly went forward to help him.
The others started discussing in hushed voices.
By right, this title should have been given to his son first. Why was it given to a girl as a princess while the other two young masters were not given titles?
Even so, it was still enviable.
This was simply giving birth to a golden lump. She had just been born and was already given the title of princess.
There were even some ignorant children who ran to Qin Qingting and said, Arent you your mothers good daughter? Moreover, you are your mothers eldest daughter. Why didnt she give you the title of princess and instead gave it to your sister?
Although the adults were scolding the child, they also wanted to know what Qin Qingting was thinking.
Qin Qingting didnt care at all. Instead, she was very pleased with herself.
Are you stupid? Im going to inherit my mothers medical skills in the future. With my sisters identity as a princess, as well as my powerful brother and uncle, my brother will definitely be very powerful in the future.
Everyone listened to the little ones clear and logical statement, and it seemed to be the case.
She didnt get to see the excitement, but she was jealous again..
Chapter 621 - 621: The Only Wife
Chapter 621 - 621: The Only Wife
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
As for the reason why Ji Hong did not confer titles to MO Ruyues two sons, it was also because their sons had to inherit their fathers business, or they had to work hard for themselves.
Girls were different from boys. Even if a girl studied, she couldnt be the top scorer. He couldnt help but dote on the girl more and give her a guarantee. Boys could work hard in the future.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were both very grateful to Ji Hong for this. They were really afraid that their two sons would be conferred with titles as well. If they didnt take care of either of them when they grew up, it would be bad if their children grew up to be crooked.
However, their idea was destined to fail. Sullo had already written the imperial edict for his two nephews.
When he found out that his little niece had already been conferred the title of princess by Ji Hong, he was so angry that he almost flipped the table. Hence, he wrote another imperial edict to confer the title of princess.
However, the children were still young, and he was reluctant to let theme to the Nortnd. Now that the Nortnd had entered winter, it was too cold. Not only could the children not take it, but he was afraid that MO Ruyue would not be able to take it either. He would wait until next summer.
The Qin familys triplets were already nine months old. The family was sitting in the courtyard feeding the triplets watermelons when the envoy from the north suddenly came to visit.
The person who came was none other than Ying Jiu, who had returned to the Nortnd with Sullo in his original identity.
Ying Jiu was now Sullos favorite person and the head butler of the trade between the two countries.
Why are you here?
Does the emperor know about this?
Ying Jiu knew that MO Ru Yue was asking about the emperor of Xi Liang. He nodded.
He was an official envoy of the Northern Kingdom, so of course he couldnt sneak into Xi Liang. He had to let the Emperor of Xi Liang know.
This lowly one hase this time with the emperors decree. The emperor has invited princess to bring the little masters to the north to avoid the summer, and at the same time, to put princess on the royal familys genealogy.
The royal family genealogy?
MO Ruyue frowned when she heard this. Ying Jiu immediately exined.
The princesss current surname in the Northern Kingdoms royal family is
Su.
MO Ruyue nodded in surprise and understanding.
The summer in Xihe Vige was the hottest, and it was not so hot that it could be tolerated. However, if they could go to a slightly cooler ce at this time, it would be a good choice to escape the heat.
Ever since MO Ruyue was pregnant with the triplets, she had basically never left Reliance Towns West River Vige.
Even during the New Yearst year, their family did not attend the pce banquet because the children were too young, and the Emperor also pardoned their worship.
MO Ruyue really wanted to go somewhere else to y, even if it was just to enjoy the scenery. Hence, after discussing with Gu Ying, the couple decided to bring the children to the Nortnd together.
Gu Ying calcted that his Civil and Martial Arts Institute would only take part in the imperial examinations the year after next. There was no need to be so anxious about the current curriculum. He could just leave the students to the teachers to take care of. He could also leave without worry. Of course, he would follow his wife out to y. He could not let his wife take the children out by herself.
Although the triplets still couldnt walk, they could crawl very smoothly. If they werent careful, they would crawl far away. The whole family, especially the four maids, Granny Rong, Granny Yan, and Chun Hua, had to run around the three little masters. They felt quite busy every day. However, no matter how busy they were, they were happy. After all, the three little fellows were too lovable.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying nned to bring Qin Qingyan, Qin Qingshuang, Qin Qinghao, and Qin Qingting out to see the world.
Especially Qin Qingyan. As the saying goes, its better to travel a thousand miles than to read ten thousand books. Its always good to let him experience more.
When Qin Qingfei and Xue Qing found out that they were going to the Nortnd, they were so angry that they beat their chests and stamped their feet.
However, they were still in confinement and had a child to carry them, so they couldnt go anywhere.
Qin Qingfei was not as irritable as Xue Qing. Although she envied her brother and sister-inw for being able to bring the children out to y, she still felt very happy when she looked at her children.
Qin Qingfeis second child was also a boy and a girl. Wang Tiezhu had a daughter now, so he had everything to do. He handed over the small matters to the servants all day long, and he only had to deal with the big matters.
The vige was rtively harmonious now, and there were no trivial matters that bothered him every day.
Beloved, dont be anxious. When youre out of confinement, Ill take you wherever you want to go.
Qin Qingfei nodded. She was already very satisfied with her life now.
On the other hand, Xue Qing called Hua Jianan into the house and gave him a good scolding.
Look at what youre doing. You already have a son. Why isnt this a daughter? Another son!
It was fine if it was a son, but why couldnt she give birth half a year earlier?
Otherwise, I would be able to follow Big Brother and Sister-inw to the Nortnd to y!
Hua Jianan
He didnt dare to say anything. He could only let his wife vent as she pleased. Otherwise, he wouldnt be able to sleep well at night.
At this moment, he looked at his youngest son and mourned for him. He gave a look to the servant girl and quickly asked the servant girl to carry the youngest son to the old man so that the old man could kiss him properly. The poor son was not loved by his father.
Beloved, dont be angry. When youre out of confinement, Ill apany you wherever you want to go.
Forget about the northern country, I can even bring you to the eastern and southern countries.
We wont have any more children in the future. Two sons are enough.
Bullshit!
Hua Jianan did not expect that his wife would still be dissatisfied even after he had said so much. Just as he was thinking about what else he should say, he heard his wife say,
If you say you dont want to have children, then you dont. You only have two sons. I must have a daughter. Why should I not have a daughter when others have a daughter?
Im telling you, Hua Jianan, if you dont give me a daughter, were not done
Hua Jianan
Whats wrong? Do you not want to have children with me?
If you dont want to have a daughter with me, who do you want to have a daughter with? Tell me which vixen it is, and I promise I wont kill her!
Hua Jianan was flustered by his wifes sudden outburst. He decided to invite Doctor Qin over tomorrow.
His wife was obviously suffering from the so-called postnatal hyperactivity that his sister-inw had mentioned.
Seeing that Xue Qing was still ring at him, he quickly surrendered.
Wife, what nonsense are you talking about?
In this life, you are my wife. Other than you, all other women are just a pile of sh * t in my eyes!
Youre finished. You actually said that sister-inw is a pile of sh * t. When my brotheres back, I wont tell him about this. If he doesnt beat you up into sh * t, Ill consider myself defeated! Hua Jianan
He decided to invite Doctor Qin over tonight.
Doctor Qin, who had finally gotten off work, was about to go home to visit his little grandson when he was dragged to his house by Hua Jianan.
Seeing him in such a hurry, he thought that something had happened to Xue Qing. When they were about to reach the entrance of the Hua family, Hua Jianan told him about Xue Qings situation.
Doctor Qin stopped.
l say, are you stupid?
The children were born one after another. Qing had never gone out to y before. Now that she saw Ruyue bringing the children out to y, she was anxious.
If you and Qing want to have another child, youd better wait for two or three years.
When this one can walk and run and give birth to a baby, you can bring her out to y for the next few years.
In case the next time she had a baby, the situation might be even worse than this.
Hua Jianan nodded to show that he understood..
Chapter 622 - 622: It’s Hard to Turn Down a Grand Invitation
Chapter 622 - 622: Its Hard to Turn Down a Grand Invitation
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Doctor Qin went to check Xue Qings pulse. Xue Qing didnt know why Doctor Qin came. After all, since they were pregnant, Doctor Qin, sister-inw, and others often checked their pulse collectively. After giving birth, it was no exception. She thought it was a normal process, but she didnt know that her husband thought she was going crazy.
In fact, after venting his anger, he felt much better. He still liked his youngest son now. After all, he was the flesh that fell from his body. There was no reason to hate him.
Doctor Qin saw that Xue Qings mood was still stable, so he gave Hua Jianan a few instructions and hurried home to see his little grandson.
Half a monthter, MO Ruyue brought the children to y along the way. They could have taken a shortcut to reach the Northern Country in half a month, but MO Ruyue wanted to see the ces they had visited before. She wanted to see how the Snowy World Vige was doing, so they took a detour.
As they got closer to the north, the weather was indeed much cooler than the hot areas they passed through. However, there were also ces that were very hot.
Along the way, they had prepared plenty of food and drinks. Even the servants, Nanny Rong, Nanny Yan, Chun Hua, and the others followed. There were a total of fiverge carriages.
Four carriages were for people, and one carriage was for medicinal herbs and food.
He had brought along quite a lot of insect repellent powder to prevent the childrens skin from being too tender and getting bitten by mosquitoes.
In June and July, the crops in the fields of all regions were flourishing. It was quite eye-catching. Basically, some of the originally lush green crops began to slowly turn into the color of a bumper harvest.
When they arrived at Xue Jie Vige, such arge group of people entered the vige, causing quite amotion.
The old vige chief of Snow World Vige recognized MO Ruyue at first nce and weed her warmly.
Because of the old vige chiefs appearance, the vigers knew that this was the great benefactor who had helped their vige, and they all came out to wee him warmly.
MO Ruyue looked at the houses that were about to copse. Now, they were all renovated. The entire vige was no longer as deste as it was in winter.
There were many beans in the courtyard of every household. Other than the rice in the paddy field, most of the crops on the drynd were cabbages. These were used to store food for the winter.
No matter what, you have toe to this old mans house for a meal again.
The old vige chief passionately insisted that MO Ruyue stay. He knew that even if he brought out the best things in the house, these nobles might not be interested. However, he knew that the nobles were approachable and he just wanted them to feel his sincerity.
Alright, then Ill disturb the old vige chief.
MO Ruyue did not refuse. If she and the others did not stay for dinner, they might end ur) regretting it.
It was indeed a few days journey to the Nortnd Imperial City. The old vige chief and the vigers warmly invited them. They could not refuse their kindness. Anyway, they would have to find an inn to stay at night. It was better to stay in the Snow World Vige and listen to their current development.
However, they did not n to stay at the old vige chiefs house. They had arge group of people, and no one in the vige could live there. Even if they lived separately, it would be inconvenient.
Coincidentally, they had their own Xue Family Bodyguard Agency and a small courtyard.
When the old vige chief and the other vigers heard that MO Ruyue had agreed to stay for dinner, they were all as happy as if they were celebrating the new year.
MO Ruyue and the others alighted from the carriage when they arrived at the vige. The children followed them. It was the triplets first time going on a long journey, so they were full of energy throughout the journey. They did not show any signs of difort, which put the entire family at ease.
The triplets looked at the people and things around them curiously. Because they were young and triplets, they basically maintained a telepathic connection with each other every day. Most of the time, their actions were somewhat synchronized. Now that they knew that they were going to get off the carriage and go out to y, they were so happy that they danced and gurgled. It was as if the three of them were chatting about getting off the carriage and having fun again.
When the vigers saw a beautiful youngdy and a graceful young man following MO Ruyue and the others down the mountain, they secretly praised them. The children of this noble family were more exquisite and good-looking than the children from their vige. They also had a noble air about them. On closer inspection, the youngdy looked very simr to the young master.
Now, Qin Qingshuang and Qin Qingyan were thirteen years old. Qin Qingyan was already 1.7 meters tall. Because he was studying in his own school, he not only studied literature but also martial arts. He looked like a sunny teenager.
The thirteen year old Qin Qingshuang was always cared for by MO Ruyue, so there was never a shortage of food and drink at home. She was slightly taller than the average thirteen-year-old girl, and she was already as tall as MO Ruyue. Her face was already pretty, and it made her look like a young girl. She was so beautiful that people did not dare to look at her for fear that it would be sphemous to look at her.
Before he could finish sighing, another pair of slightly younger Miss and Little Lord, who looked to be seven or eight years old, came down. It was not an exaggeration to call them the golden boy and jade girl. On closer inspection, these two young ones looked somewhat simr to the older pair. One look and it was obvious that they were a family.
When the triplets alighted from the carriage, the old vige chief and the vigers were even more surprised.
The triplets were dressed exquisitely. Although Qin Zilu was dressed differently from her two brothers, it was obvious that they were from the same series. They were in different styles!
Is this your child? These were triplets, right? And these two pairs were also twins, right?
Yes, these are all my children. The two older ones are my brother and sister, and these five are all my children.
MO Ruyue smiled and exined the identities of the children to the old vige chief.
Noble, youre really blessed. Its rare for ordinary people to have twins, let alone a pair of twins. Your family has a pair of twins.
Yes.
MO Ruyue wasnt modest at all. She felt that she was indeed blessed.
Wei Yi, you take Nanny Yan and the others to the bodyguard agency to pack up. Well stay there tonight.
Yes.
Wei Yi epted the order and Granny Yan ordered a few maids to follow him.
Dont you live in the vige tonight?
The old vige chief wanted to ask the old woman to go to the best few families in the vige and ask them to vacate their best rooms for the nobles to use first.
Uncle, thank you for your kindness. Look at our big family. Its probably impossible for each family in the vige to have one or two children. I have many children. Besides, the bodyguard agency is just outside the vige.
The old vige chiefs face turned a little red when he saw this. Indeed, even if every family in the vige had an empty room, it would not do. He could not let the noble take care of so many children.
Its my fault for not thinking things through.
Uncle, dont be so polite. Well leave tomorrow. Theres no need to go through so much trouble.
The meal was eaten at the old vige chiefs house. Every viger in the vige took out their best food and sent it to the vige chiefs house. They wanted to show their sincerity.
MO Ruyue asked Chun Hua to bring some of the food that they had brought along with them. Wei Er brought a few guards to the mountains to hunt a lot of prey. That night, the entire vige held a barbecue bonfire party..
Chapter 623 - 623: Beach
Chapter 623 - 623: Beach
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The next morning, when MO Ruyues family left, the entire vige of Xuejie Vige sent them off.
A few dayster, the group finally arrived at the Nortnd Imperial City. From their attire, it was obvious that they were outsiders.
Especially those children who had lifted the curtains of the carriage. Their eyes were filled with curiosity. There were a total of seven children, big and small, and all seven children looked very simr. Looking at the two young couples, they probably wouldnt be able to have so many children.
However, the seven children looked very much like them. These were not important. What was important was that the seven children seemed to be twins and triplets.
What kind of godly family could give birth to such a child!
When Su Luo heard the Eagle Guard report that MO Ruyue and the others had arrived, she quickly ordered people to enter the Imperial Pce with great fanfare and enthusiasm.
This was even worse. When those people saw this group of people being invited into the pce, were they rtives of the royal family?
As far as they knew, the Emperor did not have any rtives wandering outside.
However, regarding these matters, regardless of whether it was the dignitaries or the ordinary people, they all kept it a secret. Who didnt know that the current emperors family was practically extinct, and his own brothers and sisters were basically nothing. Even if there were, they were in the Imperial City. These people were definitely not people they knew.
MO Ruyues family was escorted into the Imperial Pce by the Imperial Guards. If it werent for the Imperial Guards, themoners would probably stick to their faces and even pull the children over to look at them.
Even if they didnt speak to them, these people would still be able to talk about their family for a long time after they entered the pce.
Even a blind person could see the adoration Su Luo felt when she saw the triplets.
Of course, he didnt neglect Qin Qinghao and Qin Qingting. After all, these two children were brought up by his younger sister. They were like his own children.
He had lost his mother when he was young, so he knew how to crave for the love of his parents. Therefore, he took special care of Qin Qingting and Qin Qinghao, including Qin Qingyan and Qin Qingshuang. The two children were even more pitiful. They only had their brother and sister-inw left.
Fortunately, they were lucky. They might have done a great deed in their previous life and met his sister in this life.
The four children also knew how the adults treated them. They were getting older and knew a lot. Seeing that the family liked the triplets so much, they did not feel jealous.
ording to Qin Qinghao and Qin Qingting, their younger brother and sister were so cute that anyone who saw them would love them more. If they were like this, what about their parents?
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were very pleased with Qin Qingting and Qin Qinghao. They had been worried that Qin Qinghao and Qin Qingting would not be able to ept the arrival of the triplets, which made MO Ruyue!s heart ache even more for the two children.
As soon as MO Ruyue saw her eldest brother, she grabbed his wrist and held it in her hand. Su Luo didnt refuse and let her sister take his pulse.
Big Brother, I see that youve already recovered!
Su Luo understood what she meant. Why didnt he have a child until now? He didnt even have a pregnant concubine.
This matter cant be rushed for a while. Besides, didnt you say that my body has umted so many toxins all year round? I have to expel thempletely. Otherwise, Im afraid that the child will be unhealthy.
MO Ruyue believed his words half-heartedly. Besides, the children were present, so it was not appropriate to discuss the details.
l heard from Ying Jiu that you asked me toe over and register in the genealogy. You changed the surname of the royal family to Su.
Who dares to have any objections? The world of the Nortnd is mine.
Whatever I say goes.
The problem was that no one dared to say anything.
Youve been traveling for half a month. Take a good rest for two days. Ive shown the Imperial Astronomical Supervisor that the day after tomorrow is an auspicious day. Ill take you to worship the heavens and announce to the world that youre the eldest princess of the Nortnd.
ording to MO Ruyue, she didnt want to make such a big fuss. But seeing her brothers excitement, she decided to let him be.
I want to eat seafood!
After traveling for half a month on the bumpy road, they werent that tired after arriving at their destination. The thought of being able to eat seafood
made Mo Ruyue happy, and so did the children. They loved seafood too.
Isnt that easy? Enough!
Sullo waved his hand in agreement.
Big Brother, I want to go to the sea by myself!
We want to go too!
The children had never crossed the sea before, but they were no strangers to the phrase crossing the sea. This was because MO Ruyue often told them that she would take them to the sea once they arrived in the Nortnd.
Alright!
The next day, Su Luo left the court early to prepare to go to the sea with MO Ruyue and the others.
Fortunately, they hade at the right time. The low tide of the past two days was after noon. Although the winter in the north was six months long, the weather was not that cool in summer.
MO Ruyue had thought that it would be cooler in the summer here than in other ces. In fact, it was just as hot here. However, it was close to the sea, so the sea breeze was quitefortable.
After noon, the sun was at its most poisonous, and it had been fifteen minutes since the court had retreated.
MO Ruyue and the others came over early in the morning and had lunch at the fishermans house. The Eagle Guards had brought some people to prepare the foodst night. MO Ruyue and the children had just woken up from their afternoon nap.
Children, Uncle is here. Lets go to the beach!
Uncle is the best!
Nanny Rong, Nanny Yan, and the others had already changed the young masters into their sea travel outfits and applied the sunblock that MO Ruyue had made.
The seven children, from the oldest to the youngest, all wore small bamboo hats, looking particrly pleasant. Even the triplets were no exception.
Nanny Rong and Nanny Yan felt that the triplets were still too young. The princess, Third Young Master, Fourth Young Master, and Fifth Young Miss still cant leave. Isnt it a little inappropriate to bring them to the seaside? Dont get sunburnt.
Before the nanny could finish her sentence, MO Ruyue understood what they were worried about. She denied it. At this time, the children can get more calcium from the sun. Besides, theyre not wearing my special sunblock. You two can take one and let them y on the beach.
Yes, this servant will definitely take good care of the young miss and the young masters.
Mo Ruyue had always taught her children not to let them be flowers in a greenhouse.
Lets go!
The fishing vige was by the sea, so they arrived not far away.
Wow, Mother, Mother, look!
Look, I picked up a big shell. Its still alive inside. Lets roast this for dinner, okay?
Alright, sprinkle some pepper salt and cumin.
It was rare for MO Ruyue to see the children as lively as angels.
Although the three little fellows couldnt walk yet, they could still walk if they were pulled by adults. They stepped on the soft and wet beach barefooted and were extremely happy. They giggled and drooled non- stop.
The activity of going to the sea made the children extremely happy. Even MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were overjoyed. They had never yed like this before. The most important thing was that they could also harvest delicious food while ying. It was full of a sense of aplishment.
Su Luo was taking Qin Qingyan and Qin Qingshuang to the other side of the sea. She was mainly taking care of Qin Qingshuang. She was a little girl and had to be careful.
The entire beach was surrounded by the Imperial Guards, leaving only their family to y by the beach. They could pick up seafood anywhere..
Chapter 624 - 624: Chess Piece
Chapter 624 - 624: Chess Piece
Trantor: Dragon goat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ah! There were bugs in the sea, and they were so big!
Qin Qingshuang shook off the big worm that was so soft that its shell could not even cover its body with a look of disgust. To be honest, she was really scared when she saw it just now. It was no worse than a leech in a paddy field.
Su Luo saw this and ran to pick it up. Little sister, this is edible too. This is delicious. Every time I send it to your ce, it doesnt survive, so you dont know.
Themon people call this an elephant trunk.
Qin Qingshuang couldnt look straight at the giant worm that had suddenly spat out saliva.
Is that so?
Sullo nodded.
Sister will call me to dig when she sees youter.
Qin Qingyan also felt disgusted by the elephants trunk, but if Brother Su said it was delicious, it would be.
Yes.
However, Qin Qingshuang had a conflict with the Elephant-Trunk Family today. She might have poached the Elephant-Trunk Family.
Qin Qingyan, who had said that he would pick it up, had long gone. Su Luo had been picking it up beside Qin Qingshuang.
Su Luo thought that the little girl had finallye to his country with her sister. She didnt want to be scared out of her wits. In the end, Qin Qingshuang even dug out some experience points and specially picked up the elephants nose to dig, but she still didnt dare to pick them up.
Big Brother Su is here.
Hes here.
The dozens of people picked up the items until it was almost dark. When they really couldnt pick them up anymore, they returned to the pce. They still had to eat barbecue at night.
They picked up a fewrge baskets of seafood and were quickly carried back to the pce by the guards.
Sullo had opened a few barbecue stalls in the imperial city of the Nortnd. Their business was full every day. If one wanted to invite friends to eat, they had to make a reservation in advance to get a seat.
At night, the whole family set up a barbecue stall in the imperial garden.
The children all personally roasted the shells, fish, shrimps, and other things they had obtained from the sea.
The children who were the first to do well all rushed to send it to MO Ruyue so that she could eat first.
MO Ruyue epted all of them. When she was three little kids pregnant, she had craved seafood so much that she could only get a whiff of it all day long.
Now that there was a ready-made one, he wouldnt open his stomach and eat it with all his might.
In a pavilion not far away, Taba Jian was standing inside a window that was slightly open. He was being supported by the servants so that he could see the scene.
When he saw MO Ruyue, his entire body trembled. He had always thought that Su Luo had lied to him that day just to anger him. He didnt expect it to be true. He was roaring in his heart. Su Shaoying had actually given birth to a daughter behind his back!
No matter how he struggled, how he roared, no one could understand hisughter.
Su Luo took advantage of the fact that MO Ruyue wasnt paying attention and made a hand gesture to the other side. The window was closed, and Tuoba Jian was thrown back onto the bed by the chambein, leaving him to roar silently.
Suddenly, Su Luo felt that Taba Jians life was quite boring.
He decided not to go to see him from now on and let him fend for himself. Of course, he would still get people to take good care of him until he died. He could be considered a filial son.
In a pavilion that was separated from the imperial garden by a lotus pond, a beauty in pce attire was looking over, wringing the handkerchief in her hand.
Beauty Zhuang, since youve already met the Emperor, isnt it a little inappropriate not to pay your respects?
The one called Beauty Zhuang was a seventeen or eighteen-year-old girl.
Behind her, another seventeen or eighteen-year-old pce maid saw that Beauty Zhuang was angry and gave her an idea.
Youre right, help me over to pay my respects to the emperor!
Beauty Zhuang looked at the Emperor, who was smiling at two of the beautiful women. She was furious.
The Emperor even personally took food for them!
Vixen!
She was the Emperors woman and had never enjoyed such treatment, so what right did they have?
She was the first woman the Emperor had doted on!
So far, the Emperor had only favored her alone.
In Beauty Zhuangs heart, she had long regarded herself as the number one person in the harem. Although the Emperor had yet to make her the Empress, as long as she was pregnant with the dragon seed, who else could be the Empress but her.
MO Ruyue and the others were enjoying the barbecue. Even the three little ones were fed some prawn meat. However, they did not dare to eat the roasted prawn meat. Instead, they were given prawn congee that was specially cooked for them. The three little fellows were still eating happily. It was extremely sweet and fragrant, as if they were eating a peerless delicacy.
Xiao Shuang, try it. Its really delicious.
Su Luo used a bamboo stick to prick a thin piece of elephant trunk meat and dipped it in mustard for Qin Qingshuang to eat.
Xiao Shuang, this is really fresh. This yellow mustard mustard is also delicious. Try the crispy elephant nose. I heard from Big Brother that you dug it up.
MO Ruyue also liked to eat elephant trunks. Actually, they were just Geoducks, and they were as big as arms. But this is raw.
Qin Qingshuang frowned.
Although the elephants trunk had been cleaned and cut into thin pieces, she lost her appetite when she thought of its original appearance.
Its been scalded and disinfected with mustard.
Su Luo still wanted Qin Qingshuang to give it a try.
Sis, this is really delicious.
Qin Qingyan had already eaten two.
l think Ill eat crabs.
This is done. Eat this meat while its hot.
Su Luo put the piece that Qin Qingshuang didnt want to eat into her mouth and gave her a bread crab.
Thank you!
Qin Qingshuang smiled and took the bread crab.
This scene was witnessed by Beauty Zhuang, who was about toe over. She wanted nothing more than to fly over and tear that face apart. She was about to rush into the imperial garden in a hurry, but was stopped by the guards.
Move aside!
Beauty Zhuangs anger was boiling. She didnt even care about a mere guard.
Beauty Zhuang, the Emperor has ordered that no one is allowed to enter.
The guards were not afraid of the cold-faced Beauty Zhuang at all and insisted on keeping watch.
Beauty Zhuang still had to maintain her beauty demeanor and took a deep breath.
Then help me inform them.
The guard thought that this person was the emperors woman, so he nodded and let another person report.
Beauty Zhuang saw that Su Luo had heard the guards report and raised her head to look in her direction. She quickly revealed her most beautiful smile, but the emperor turned his head away!
The guard came over in a while.
Beauty Zhuang, please go back. The Emperor said that its inconvenient to see you now.
What?
Beauty Zhuang thought that she had heard wrongly, so the guard repeated himself.
Coincidentally, MO Ruyue, Qin Qingshuang, and the others nced over. Beauty Zhuang saw the smiles on their faces and felt that they were mocking her.
In a fit of anger, she covered her face and turned to run.
Beauty, Beauty Zhuang, slow down.
The pce maid hurriedly ran after him.
Big brother, isnt this not very good?
MO Ruyue felt that the beauty in the pce dress had looked at them as if they were the ones who had taken over the magpies nest. She thought that she was still Big Brothers woman, so it was as if she was ostracizing them.
However, from afar, she looked at the beauty in the pce dress. She should not be easy to get along with.
Hes just a chess piece, but he really thinks hes a character. Dont worry about her.
Su Luo didnt care at all. Beauty Zhuang was indeed a chess piece and someone elses spy.
Now that he was happily with his sisters family, was he going to let her spoil the fun?
Because of Su Luos words, everyone present treated Beauty Zhuang as a small interlude and didnt take her to heart..
Chapter 625 - 625: The Princess’ Residence
Chapter 625 - 625: The Princess Residence
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
June 28th was an auspicious day, suitable for sacrifice!
This was also the day Su Luo was preparing to register MO Ruyue in the Su familys genealogy.
Su Luo personally led MO Ruyue to worship. After the sacrifice, the eunuch announced the imperial edict on the high tform.
Eldest Princess Su Yue acknowledged her ancestors and returned to the n.
Xue Chengen was the Prince of Chengen, Li Zichao was the Prince of
Chaoyang, Li Zilu was the Princess of Mingzhu, Qin Qinghao was the County
Lord, and Qin Qingting was the County Lord.
After the eunuch finished reading the decree, Su Luo immediately smiled at MO Ruyue. MO Ruyue, Gu Ying, and the seven children knelt down to thank the emperor for his kindness.
Nio Ruyue was a little confused. Wasnt it just a genealogy? Why did it be a title?
The same is true of Lonely Shadow.
Li Zicheng and Qin Qingting, on the other hand, were more knowledgeable than the average eight-year-old, even though they were already eight years old.
They understood that their uncle was doing this for their mother so that she and her brother would not be dissatisfied with their mother.
In fact, as they grew older, they knew that they were not born by their mothers. However, in their hearts, their mothers were their biological mothers.
They really liked this uncle of theirs.
Su Luo had originally wanted to give Qin Qingyan and Qin Qingshuang some titles. Most importantly, they were not her sisters children. They were her brother-inw and sister-inw, and they were not from the Nortnd. It would be difficult to give them titles.
Now that Qin Qingyan and Qin Qingshuang had grown up, he knew that Qin Qingyan was about to inherit his brothers Civil and Military Academy.
As for Qin Qingshuang, her family had powerful backers. She would definitely be able to marry into a good family in the future. She would not be afraid of being bullied by her inws. Even if it did not work out well, she still had him, her emperor brother.
He had other thoughts. After all, Qin Qingyan and Qin Qingshuang had grown up with his sister. With their rtionship, they could more or less benefit from it. This way, they would know more clearly how good their sister was to them.
However, he still rewarded Qin Qingyan and Qin Qingshuang with many things.
When the officials learned that the Emperor had a younger sister, they were all very surprised.
The newly conferred Eldest Princess looked very much like the deceased Imperial Concubine Su. Just by looking at her face, they all believed it. And the few twins that followed MO Ruyue had amazed the ministers.
What kind of immortal bloodline was this!
All the twins were twins, and the youngest one was actually a triplets. This was simply unheard of and rare in the world.
It wasnt that no one had ever been pregnant with multiple children in all these years or in ancient times. Although the chances were very low, there were still some. However, it was generally very difficult to give birth to them, and even if they did, it was difficult to survive.
After going through so much hardship, MO Ruyues triplets were like a miracle.
Wee back, Eldest Princess. Long live the princess!
After the sacrifice, the officials left.
Sister, Ill take you to the princesss residence. If theres anything you dont like, tell me and Ill get someone to change it.
MO Ruyue saw her big brothers excitement and followed him to take a look. She must be happy because she liked him.
Thank you, Big Brother.
What are you talking about? What did you call me?
If it wasnt for your unwillingness, then the emperor
Alright, big brother, just look at your nephews. Do you have the heart to leave that mess to me?
MO Ruyue hurriedly interrupted him. Even if he was the Emperor, he couldnt say such things in front of outsiders.
Oh. He was reluctant.
Speaking of which, you gave birth to three at once. Cant you give me one?
No!
No!
No!
Before Su Luo could finish speaking, MO Ruyue, Gu Ying, and the four older children rejected him in unison.
Alright, alright, I dont want it. Then why dont you let your daughter take the surname Su?
Su Luo knew that it was useless no matter how greedy she was.The three of them have the surname Xue and the surname Li. Shouldnt they have the same surname as you?
The more Su Luo spoke, the lower her voice became, but she still said what she wanted to say.
Nio Ruyue rolled her eyes at him. Would he be her child if his surname was Su?
Su Luo pretended not to understand and let this matter pass. Otherwise, what else could she do?
Hug!
Suddenly, Li Zilu, who was originally in Qin Qingshuangs arms, raised her
two small hands toward Sullo. This stunned everyone present.
They had all heard it clearly. Li Zilu had also said the word hug very clearly. At this moment, she was opening her two small arms and looking at Su Luo with a longing expression. It was obvious that she wanted Su Luo to hug her.
The eunuch who was standing at the side also saw the little princess. The little princess had a look of longing on her face. He felt a little heartache. After all, the emperor was not as friendly as he looked. If the emperor did not hug her, would the little princess cry? Hey, hey! Uncle, carry me!
Su Luo was pleasantly surprised.
Li Zilu was carried over by Su Luo. She was very curious about the hat on his head, especially the tassel gold beads on it.
Zilu, can you give me a hug?
MO Ruyue felt that her eldest brother was wearing a yellow robe and was not suitable to carry a child. She felt that he was offending his dignity.
In the end, Li Zi poked her head out and buried her head into Su Luos shoulder. Her hand was also tightly wrapped around Su Luffs neck.
Hahaha, my niece likes me. Sister, its wrong of you not to let her get close to me.
Weve arrived at the princess residence.
The que on the door of the princesss residence that Su Luo had given to MO Ruyue was a simple and clear golden que-Eldest Princesss Residence.
Wow, this princesss manor is so big!
The nails on the door of the princesss manor were actually nine horizontal and nine vertical.
Usually, only the pce doors would have nine horizontal and nine vertical nails, indicating that the emperors power was supreme. For example, the number and arrangement of the door nails in the Princes mansion, the Regional Kings Mansion, and the temples were different ording to their status and rank. Generally, the princes mansion is vertical nine horizontal seven, the princes mansion is vertical seven horizontal five; The Dukes Pce had seven for each rank, and the number of marquises and barons was reduced to five.
No matter how favored the Princesss Residence was, it was at most on par with a Prince. However, after MO Ruyue counted twice, the number on the door of her Princesss Residence was indeed nine.
Big brother, did you install the wrong door for me?
MO Ruyue felt that there was a possibility that her elder brother did not know about it either. However, she could not pretend that she did not know about this matter. She had to tell the person who had her heart. Was she trying to rahal?
Thats right. I asked you to install this door. Isnt it nice? Dont feel burdened. 1 think youre worthy of this door.
If it wasnt for you being unwilling
Alright, alright. This door is the door.
MO Ruyue interrupted her brothers words again. She was really impressed. It seemed that her brother would not give up until he achieved his goal.
The guards stepped forward and opened the door. MO Ruyue and the others entered through the door. The moment they entered the Princesss manor, the interior was much brighter than the outside.
The decorations were not luxurious, but they were all arranged ording to Nio Ruyues preferences. The materials used were obviously of the highest quality.
Mother, this is as big as four of our family. I keep feeling that this princesss manor is very, very big!
Our Qingting is really sharp-eyed!
Su Luo looked at her sister nervously, afraid that she wouldnt like it..
Chapter 626 - 626: Picking Up Seafood
Chapter 626 - 626: Picking Up Seafood
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Big Brother, its not easy for you to earn some money. You spent it all on
MO Ruyue couldnt finish her sentence. She knew that everything Big Brother did was to make her happy. It was precisely because of this that she felt even more upset. Her brother was now alone in the Northern Kingdom, and she was his only rtive. He wanted to give her everything good, even the throne. As long as she agreed, he would immediately give it to her.
Isnt money spent? Why didnt he spend the money he earned and leave it there to umte dust?
How about it, do you like this princesss manor?
If theres anything you dont like, let me know. Ill get someone to change it immediately. This is the princesss manor for you to live in. I have to make you like it so that you can livefortably.
As he snoke. he looked at the people around him.
You all have your own courtyards. Go take a look. If youre not satisfied with anything, just let me know. Its true!
Thats great. Uncle is the best!
The children were all overjoyed as they let the nannies bring them to their own courtyard.
Those nannies and pce maids were all prepared by Su Luo ording to their status. Even the servants in each courtyard wereplete. There was no shortage of them. They were really meticulous.
After receiving the childrens praise, Sullo smiled happily. He felt that everything he had done was not worth it. As long as they were happy, it was the greatest gain.
Big Brother, hurry up and marry a girl you like.
Su Luo, who was ying with Li Zilu in her arms, was a little confused when she heard MO Ruyues sudden words.
Wasnt he looking at the princesss manor? What did it have to do with him?
If you dont marry a wife to help you manage the house, the little money you earn wont be enough for you to squander.
Seeing that Su Luo didnt understand, MO Ruyue decided to make it clear to him.
You dont know that Im now a tyrant in the eyes of those ministers in the Nortnd. The beautiful women they sent over all have their own goals.
Actually, Im very envious of ordinary people. If they find someone they really like, theyll be together for the rest of their lives. Theyll be happy and wont have any messy things to do.
However, I dont think I can do that with my status. Its better not to harm a good girl.
MO Ruyue did not expect her big brother to have such thoughts. Normally, people in this era would take it for granted to have three wives and four concubines.
She didnt expect her big brother to have such thoughts. Suddenly, she felt a little sorry for her big brother. Not only did he have to deal with state affairs all day long, but he also had to face those women with ill intentions when it was finally time for his rest.
MO Ruyue leaned closer to Su Luo. Big Brother, what kind of girl do you like? Tell me. Ill keep an eye out for you. If you find someone you really like, you can also dismiss her harem.
Anyway, youve already said that youre a tyrant in the eyes of those ministers.
Doesnt a tyrant do whatever he likes?
Oh. Not yet. When I have her, I wont let her suffer, but now is not the time.
Theres no rush. Im still young.
When Su Luo said this, Gu Ying nced at him.
Strictly speaking, Su Luo was one year older than him and three years older than his wife. She was now twenty-five years old. Although she was still young, she was not that young for someone who did not have children.
MO Ruyue happened to notice his nce at Su Luo. MO Ruyue and Gu Ying had a tacit understanding, so she knew what his nce meant at a nce.
Why? Doesnt my brother look young?
At 25 years old, she could still be considered a baby!
Young, big brother looks even younger than me.
What Gu Ying said was also the truth. Su Luffs overall appearance was more attractive.
On the other hand, he had a more resolute appearance and appeared more mature.
MO Ruyue gave Gu Ying a look that said at least youre tactful.
Big Brother, just tell me what type you like. Ill keep an eye out for you.
Oh. Smart and clever, too gentle, its best if she has a little temper, and its best if she has some skills. If Im not by her side, she can protect herself when something happens.
He didnt want to be as gentle and kind as his mother, but what kind of ending did he end up with?
This is a little difficult.
MO Ruyue recalled that she had never met such a woman before.
Its okay. Help me find it slowly. Im not in a hurry.
As they chatted, MO Ruyue took a tour of the Princesss Residence. In the middle of the garden in the second courtyard, there was a lookout pavilion. Standing on it, one could basically see the entire Princesss Residence.
It was indeed four times the size of the princesss manor in West River Vige.
Su Luo was also very meticulous. ording to the things that MO Ruyues family had specially prepared for the children, she had specially built a garden for the children to y in. The slide, seesaw, swing, climbing, and so on were all made ording to MO Ruyues family.
Thank you, Big Brother.
If you really want to thank me, then stay in the pce for a few more days to apany me.
MO Ruyue
Gu Ying
Therefore, after visiting the princesss residence, MO Ruyue and the others did not stay in the princesss residence. Instead, they followed Sullo back to the pce.
Because of Li Zilus stickiness, although it was for the tassels on Su Luffs head, Su Luo was extremely happy. Her heart was also melted by Li Zilus cuteness. In the end, she hugged the child for the entire morning. She only let go of him when the child was sleepy after lunch. After the nanny carried him to sleep, Su Luo went to change out of her dragon robe.
This scene was seen by the eunuchs and servants who followed the Emperor. They had made up their minds that in the future, the Eldest Princess family, especially the Eldest Princess and the Young Princess, would be the Emperors favorite. They would definitely serve them well.
On this day, Su Luo went to the beach with MO Ruyue and the others. This time, they went to a different beach.
This was because Sullo wanted them to see a different scenery. The scenery corresponding to each beach was somewhat different, each with its own characteristics.
Big brother, when we came, you always upied the entire beach. Our family cant finish picking up so much. Dont waste the seafood that washed up. Let the guards pick it up together.
There were reefs and many potholes in this area. As the seawater receded, the seawater in many potholes would dry up, leaving some fish and prawns in the potholes. In about half an hour, these fish and prawns would be dried up. It would be a waste if they were not picked up.
Those were all delicious, and it was shameful to waste them.
Su Luo nodded when she heard MO Ruyues words. She waved her hand and called a few guards over, telling them to split up and go to the reef beach to pick up fish, prawns, and crabs.
Pick up more. You guys can have barbecue tonight too.
A few guards who were sent to pick up seafood were very enthusiastic. As long as they saw anything that could be eaten, they would ept it.
Brother, if we buy this whole area, will the people who came to pick up the seafood not be able to pick it up?
This beach is very long. Its quite far from the fishermen here. They rarelye here to pick up fish..
Chapter 627 - 627: Building a House
Chapter 627 - 627: Building a House
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Su Luo also specially looked after the location and tried not to go to the ces that fishermen usually liked to go.
Those fishermen rely on the sea to survive in the summer. What about in the winter?
They evene in winter. Otherwise, the entire winter is six months long and they will starve to death.
Nio Ruyue thought about it and agreed. Although these people could earn a lot by going to the sea in the summer, they were notzy enough to stay in their houses in the winter. Just like the farmers in other ces, they would go to the fields to work even in the middle of winter.
Seafood in winter was much more expensive than in summer, so most people would not give up this opportunity.
Big Brother, dont you have any other ideas when you go to West River Vige andbine it with the stalls there?
There is this idea, but it can only be something in the summer. Winter is too cold. No onees out no matter what.
Su Luo had also thought of building somemercial streets in other ces. The cost was a little high, so he had been considering it.
Actually, you can also build a lot of vacation houses by the sea and set up a lot of barbecue grills by the sea. Or, like what we are doing now, we can circle a safe area. When the tide is low, those who want to experience the sea cane over and ride the sea themselves. Then, they can take it and personally barbecue it. It will definitely taste better than buying it. Wouldnt it be beautiful?
I think this is feasible. We can definitely earn a lot of money.
They could also set up a stall to sell things. With more people, anything would do.
Su Luffs eyes lit up when she heard that. Thats right, why didnt he think of that!
Sister, youre still smart!
This matter will be settled tomorrow!
Sister, can you draw me some beautiful house drawings? I dont have such a capable person in the northern country.
Dont worry. Since I gave you the idea, Ill definitely help you supervise it.
By the way, many of these seafood could also be raised.
If you can raise it yourself, whether you eat it or sell it, it will be profitable.
MO Ruyue recalled that they were reared by the sea. In her world, as long as it was edible, they could grow or raise it.
The sea is so big, how are we going to raise them?
These seafood couldnt survive in freshwater.
Su Luo raised her head and looked at the endless sea. If the fish and prawns that were thrown in swam to the other side of the sea, how would they catch them?
Isnt this simple? When the tide is low, well use a fishing to raise them in the shallow water.
For example, if they circled a fish pond, a shrimp pond, or a crab pond, they wouldnt be able to escape.
Fish, prawns, crabs, and shells should be easy to raise.
MO Ruyue felt that as long as she found a way, she should be able to raise all the seafood in the sea.
Aiya! Yes, yes, yes!
Sister, you must stay here for a while longer. Maybe one day you will think of a good way to earn money for me!
When the timees, Ill give you half of the money I earn!
Su Luo couldnt wait to call a guard over. She whispered a few words to him and the guard left. MO Ruyue and the others did not notice it at first, but not long after, the guard returned with a few people.
The leader was a middle-aged man who looked to be in his forties. He was wiping the sweat off his head as he jogged over. When he saw Su Luo, he quickly tidied up his appearance and walked over quickly.
This lowly official pays his respects to the emperor, long live the emperor!
This humble official pays his respects to the Eldest Princess. The Princess is a thousand years old!
No need for formalities!
Come over, 1 have something to tell you.
When Lord Wang heard the Emperor call him beloved Qing, his heart thumped. It really made his heart tremble. He had never heard the Emperor call anyone beloved Qing. He always felt like he was going to be beheaded.
Im telling you, this, this, this, this
Lord Wang heaved a sigh of relief in his heart after hearing this. He would definitely nod his head and do as the Emperor instructed, and he had to do it perfectly!
This lowly official listens to orders, let them pull the bricks.
Go and get everything you want first. When I get the blueprint for you, build it ording to the blueprint.
Yes, sir!
You may leave.
Yes, sir!
MO Ruyue knew that her big brother was a man of action and a man of urgency. They had just finished their barbecue at the beach when Lord Wang came with arge group of people and arge cart of bricks.
Lets go back and draw.
No need.
Sister, take the children to take a nap first. Its not toote to get up and draw after you sleep well.
These people couldnt work that fast. They still had to unload the trucks.
They might not even be able to transport all the materials today.
Uncle, are you going to build a house?
Qin Qingting looked at the posture. They were familiar with this scene.
Yes, do you want it? Uncle will build one for you.
Alright!
That way, when Ie to the Nortnd, I can live by the sea every day and eat seafood every day!
Yes, and our Zilu has one too. Chengen, Zichao, Xiaoqiang, and Xiaoshuang all have one!
Other uncles might not have it, but they could build a small house by the sea.
MO Ruyue didnt even have time to say anything before Su Luo happily arranged everything.
Oh right, in two days, Ill bring you guys to see my Womens College and Civil and Martial Arts College!
This was the same rhythm as West River Vige.
Big brother, you mentioned the academy. The people I trained for you will be able to graduate soon.
The people in the womens college and the medical school had started training her when she was pregnantst year, when Su Luo returned to the Nortnd.
Do you think Im your big brother? Ive been back for two years and Ive been eating rice every day.
Dont worry, even if the people you trained for mee back now, they will be able to start teaching immediately.
The few of them chatted for a while more. Su Luo saw that Nio Ruyue was already looking tired, so she quickly went to take a nap. He also went to rest for a while. It was so hot that it was easy to feel sleepy at noon.
MO Ruyue woke up from her lunch break and ate something. She yed with the three little ones for a while. When Su Luo came over, Qin Zilu crawled towards her uncle. Perhaps because of the golden pearl tassel on his head, the two ot tnem nad establisned a good fnendsmp.
After a while, Qin Qingshuang, Qin Qingting, and Qin Qinghao came over. They brought the three kids to the amusement park to y. MO Ruyue asked someone to prepare a brush, ink, paper, and inkstone, and began to draw a picture of the seaside resort.
The previous Lord Wang was very efficient. In half a day, he had pulled out enough bricks to build twenty small courtyards and piled up a lot of wood.
After MO Ruyue finished drawing the blueprint, Su Luo asked someone to call Lord Wang directly to the pce. MO Ruyue exined it to Lord Wang twice in person. Lord Wang said that he remembered and knew the process clearly. He held the blueprint as if it was a treasure and went out.
As soon as Lord Wang left, an inner servant came over with a flustered expression. The inner servant first reported something to the eunuch who was guarding the garden entrance. Then, the eunuch ran to Sullo with a flustered expression.
Reporting to the Emperor!
Su Luo nced at the eunuch, indicating for him to say what he wanted to say.
The emperor was fine when he was ying with the princesses and the kings. After the emperor came over, Beauty Zhuang went away and did not meet the emperor. Now, Beauty Zhuang is arguing with Miss Qin and even started fighting.
Before the eunuch could finish his sentence, MO Ruyue, Gu Ying, and Su Luo stood up at the same time and headed towards the amusement park. They had only taken two steps when Su Luo used her lightness skill to fly away. Seeing this, Gu Ying picked up MO Ruyue and flew along with them..
Chapter 628 - 628: You Don’t Have to Kneel to Anyone
Chapter 628 - 628: You Dont Have to Kneel to Anyone
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When the three of them arrived, they saw Qin Qingshuang and Qin Qingting pressing down on Beauty Zhuang. Qin Qingyan and Qin Qinghao stood in front of them, blocking the people who wanted to stop the fight. They looked like they would beat up anyone who tried to stop the fight.
Although Qin Qingshuang and Qin Qingyan had not been conferred a title and were justmoners in the Nortnd, their sister-inw was the Eldest
Princess, Qin Qingting and Qin Qinghao were the county lords and county lords, and the three young ones were the kings and princesss favorite people.
The eunuchs and pce maids were so anxious that smoke was rising from their heads. They did not dare to make any unnecessary moves.
Nanny Rong, Chun Hua, and a few others were watching worriedly with the three little ones.
Youre so vicious at such a young age. Youre a shrew. A country bumpkin still knows how to seduce people.
Qin Qingting immediately pped Beauty Zhuang, who was still pping on the face. Although she was small, her strength was not small. After all, they had never beencking in training. Moreover, Qin Qingting and Qin Qinghao were still young. They had practiced the Xue familys modified internal cultivation method for four to five years. They had some strength in their bodies. They could not fly over roofs, walk on walls, or break rocks with their hands. If they escaped, they would not be caught by ordinary people. It would not be a problem for them to deal with three to four strong men alone. Half of Beauty Zhuangs face swelled up from Qin Qingtings p.
Ah-wuuu-you bitch. You, you actually dare to hit bengong.
Beauty Zhuang was beaten up by Qin Qingshuang and Qin Qingting. She was so angry that she wanted to vomit blood. However, she could not restrain these two little b * tches at all. Her servant girl was also pulled away by the other servants.
You dare to hit our beauty, when the emperor finds out, he will make you suffer!
Beauty Zhuangs servant girl saw that her master had been beaten up and her eyes were red as she shouted.
Qin Qingting pped Beauty Zhuang again.
Youre the one who doesnt care about your face. Youre just a little beauty and you call yourself bengong?
Im the county head personally conferred by my uncle. Are you scolding me because youre dissatisfied with my uncle?
Although Qin Qingting was young and Qin Qingshuang was only thirteen years old, they often entered the pce when they were in Xi Liang. They knew the other side of many things.
This Beauty Zhuang was crazy. Seeing that Qin Qingshuang was beautiful and could get close to the Emperor, she had some dirty thoughts and deliberately came to find trouble. However, she did not know that they were tough people and had been beaten up by Qin Qingshuang and Qin Qingting for quite a while.
Of course, the two little girls were not unreasonable. After all, Beauty Zhuang was Su Luffs harem. In simple words, one had to look at the owner before hitting a dog. However, this Beauty Zhuang was too infuriating. She was clearly a beauty in the pce, but her words were not inferior to those of an unreasonable shrew in the countryside.
Meanwhile, Qin Qingshuang and Qin Qingting had been taught by MO Ruyue that girls should not casually speak dirty words. It was not polite. As they grew older, they did not want to be such shrews. They had to convince people with reason. If they had no other choice, they could only fight like this. Moreover, it was Beauty Zhuang who hit Qin Qingshuang first.
Qin Qingshuang was furious. Otherwise, she wouldnt have hit him. Her face was still red.
Qin Qingtings personality had changed a lot. When she was young, she would have just used a handful of powder to settle things. Now, she was only hitting Beauty Zhuang. She was lucky.
This servant greets the Emperor!
When the pce maids saw that the emperor had finally arrived, they all heaved a sigh of relief. At the same time, they were also a little frightened. The masters had caused such a ruckus. It was really a disaster for the little ghosts when the King of Hell fought.
When the pce maids kowtowed, the three masters also realized that someone who could take charge hade.
Qin Qingshuang first saw Brother Su and her sister-inw. It was unsightly for her to press Beauty Zhuang down like a shrew. She let go of her hand first, but at the same time, she was worried that her sister-inw would be angry.
Qin Qingting let go of her aunts hand and stood next to her.
Your Majesty, youre finally here!
If you donte, ChenQie will be beaten to death by them and you wont be able to see ChenQie. Wuuu
Beauty Zhuang was the first toin. Perhaps it was a blessing in disguise for him to be beaten up. After all, he was bullied by those two little b * tches.
Auntie, your face must be hurting, right?
Its bleeding.
Qin Qingshuang and Qin Qingting didnt defend themselves. Instead, Qin Qingting touched the left side of Qin Qingshuangs face, which had been pped, with a pained expression.
Qin Qingtings heart ached, and her eyes turned red. It was all her fault for being slow to react and letting that psychopath seed.
Im fine.
Qin Qingshuang turned her face away.
When everyone heard Qin Qingtings words, they all looked at Qin Qingshuangs face. Indeed, there was an inch-long bloody scar on her left cheek. It was obviously a cut made by her fingernails.
Impudent!
Su Luo roared angrily. Beauty Zhuang was happy.
Humph! Little b * tch, lets see if you still wont die!
Men!
Beauty Zhuang was extremely excited when she heard Su Luffs angry voice.
She would definitely send this little b * tch to the imperial prison and torture
Ha ha ha ha.
She wasughing maniacally in her heart, but on the surface, she was sobbing.
Your subordinate is here!
A few guards with knives came over and knelt down to ept the order.
Take Madam Zhuang away. Without my permission, no one is allowed to visit!
The scene was silent for a moment. When a few armed guards took Beauty Zhuang away, Zhuang Mei finally realized that she had not heard wrongly.
Your Majesty, Im innocent! Im innocent!
Why didnt you arrest that little slut?
She was clearly the one who disrespected me. How could you lock me up? You
cant
Shut her up.
Su Luo couldnt guarantee that if she said another word, she would kill her with a palm.
Emperor, its them.
Drag him out!
Before Beauty Zhuangs personal maid could finish her sentence, she was gagged and dragged away.
Su Luo gestured to the guard who was dragging Beauty Zhuangs maid, and the guard instantly understood.
He was beaten to death!
Summon the Imperial Physician!
Immediately, a eunuch left to look for a doctor. He didnt need Su Luo to tell him what kind of doctor he was looking for. He knew that he was the best at surgery.
MO Ruyue had already checked the wound on Qin Qingshuangs face.
The wound isnt very deep. It should be fine after applying medicine for a few days. However, you cant eat seafood for the next two days.
Yes.
Qin Qingshuang recalled Brother Sus serious expression just now and was a little scared. It was the first time she had seen Brother Su angry.
Qin Qingting knelt down in front of Sullo. Qin Qinghao, Qin Qingyan, and Qin Qingshuang had to kneel down together.
Su Luo quickly picked Qin Qingting up.
What are you doing? Youre not allowed to kneel. Get up!
Su Luffs face was serious, so the children did not kneel down.
You dont have to kneel in the future.
Su Luo saw her sister and brother-inw from the corner of her eye and changed her mind.
If you make a mistake with your parents, they will decide whether you kneel or not.
Thank you, Uncle!
Thank you, Emperor.
Hmm?
Thank you, Big Brother Su!
Chapter 629 - 629: Sent to the Nunnery
Chapter 629 - 629: Sent to the Nunnery
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Yes.
Su Luos stern face was quite dignified.
Qingting, what do you think happened?
Uncle, Mother, Uncle, she was the one who came to look for Uncle. We said that Uncle wasnt here, and she said that we were lying. Then, she said that Aunt didnt pay her respects. Actually, Aunt was about to pay her respects, but she interrupted Aunts greetings. She said that Aunt was just a peasant girl who didnt put her in her eyes. She pped Aunt first when we werent paying attention and even said bad things. Thats why I attacked her. Aunt was afraid that I would be beaten up, so she helped me.
If you want to me someone, me me. Its all my fault. I couldnt hold back.
Qin Qingting had wanted to tell her the whole story just now. She felt that she should be the one to me. She couldnt me her aunt. Her aunt was already a youngdy and her reputation was very important. She was still a child. Her reputation didnt matter.
Qingting, well done.
Su Luo touched Qin Qingtings head and sorted out her expression.
Im sorry. 1 didnt take good care of you as your uncle and let you suffer such grievances at home.
Dont worry, Ill give you justice.
Su Luo really med herself.
Actually, even if Qin Qingting didnt exin, the words they heard from Beauty Zhuang were enough to make her stay in the cold pce forever.
Now, Sullo had a new idea.
Does Sister Xiao Shuangs face matter? Will it leave a scar?
Su Luo was most concerned about Qin Qingshuangs face.
A youngdys face was the most precious. She couldnt leave a scar on it, or it would ruin her appearance.
MO Ruyues heart ached when she saw Qin Qingshuangs face. If Su Luo hadnt already asked someone to take Beauty Zhuang away, she would have taught Beauty Zhuang a lesson.
If you hadnt met me, you might have left a scar. Scars made by fingernails are the easiest to leave scars, and theres madness in your fingernails.
Just tell me what herbs you want. Why dont you go to the storeroom and take the best ones that you can use?
l wont be polite.
MO Ruyue nodded and Su Luo felt relieved.
The imperial physician came over and examined Qin Qingshuangs wound, not daring to hide it.
If you want this wound to not leave a scar, you must add snow lotus into the Jade Skin Ointment.
No matter what you want to add, use the best. You must not leave a scar. Yes.
The imperial physician went down to prepare the medicine, MO Ruyue was puzzled.Whats wrong? You still dont believe in my medical skills?
No, sister, dont be oversensitive. I just want these people to know that youre my reverse scale and that no one can touch you.
Death upon contact!
And it was the kind where there were many ways to die!
MO Ruyue also understood. Anyway, Big Brother was the Emperor. He could do whatever he wanted.
After this incident, everyone was no longer in the mood to y outside. Only the three little ones were carefree. The next day
If theres anything, report it!
The eunuch only shouted the first half of the sentence, but did not shout the second half.
The ministers were all muttering in their hearts. Did the eunuch forget his words, or did the emperor have something to do?
The ministers who had submitted memorials all handed them over. When thest person finished, the Emperor did not let them leave. Today, I want to talk to Lord Zhuang about something.
Lord Zhuangs heart thumped when he was called out.
Su Luo didnt make them wait for long. She couldnt be bothered to say it herself and let the eunuch read out the imperial edict.
The Zhuang family is unvirtuous and unvirtuous. They hurt people in public like a shrew cursing in the street. They are not worthy of being a beauty and have been demoted to amoner.
Lord Zhuang failed to teach his daughter well and demoted her to the fourth grade.
Lord Zhuang had been demoted three levels. After hearing the imperial edict, his legs went weak and he almost fell to the ground. However, he could not lose his manners in front of the court at this moment. The emperor is angry head up he again make what inappropriate action, may enrage dragon face, head fall also uncertain.
Lord Zhuang, please ept the edict.
The eunuch saw that Lord Zhuang was still standing there in a daze and raised his voice to call out.
This official thanks the emperor! I will definitely follow your teachings!
Retreat!
After the emperor left, the ministers were all in an uproar, trying to find out what Beauty Zhuang had done.
Because Su Luo didnt give the order to keep her mouth shut, everything that Beauty Zhuang had done was made known to the entire court.
Of course, when the fathers-inw were talking, they automatically excluded the part where Qin Qingshuang and Qin Qingting beat up Beauty Zhuang.
Zhuang shi, who had been demoted home in advance, could not believe that the emperor was so heartless. She was clearly not in the wrong. She loved the emperor so much. How could the emperor treat her like this? She was now fighting to the death at home.
After Lord Zhuang arrived home, he pped Madam Zhuangs face a few times without saying a word.
Evil creature! Useless thing!
Master, whats wrong? Master, how did you hit Mei er?
Mother Zhuangs heart ached when she saw that her daughter had been beaten senseless.
You still have the cheek to ask? Ask yourself what stupid things your good daughter has done!
Someone, send her to the nunnery and never leave!
Impossible!
The emperor must have made a mistake. It must be that slut, it must be that
Mother, Mother, save me, I dont want to go to the nunnery, I dont want to
go
Mother Zhuang could not just watch her daughter being sent to the nunnery. If she was sent there, she would be no different from a dead person. That was the flesh that fell from her body!
Master, you cant send Mei er to a nunnery!
You If you have to send me to the station, then send me to the station as well!
Lord Zhuang was furious. You think I dont dare?!
She had angered the dragon! He was demoted to amoner!
To put it nicely, she was divorced and sent home. In fact, she was not even a concubine. How could she be divorced?
It was equivalent to being chased out of the pce!
Who would dare to marry her in the future!
Keep her alive and let my Zhuang family be a joke in the future!
Even so, it was inevitable that he would be taken advantage of by others. However, after he sent Zhuang Mei away, in the eyes of outsiders, he also had a standpoint.
A daughter who was married off was like spilled water. Even if she was divorced, it had nothing to do with the Zhuang family in the future!
The emperor even had the eunuch read out the imperial edict in front of all the civil and military officials, demoting me by three levels. My old face waspletely thrown away by her!
Moreover, the emperor asked me to bring her back to teach herself. If I dont put on an act, Im afraid I wont have a good time with the emperor!
Lord Zhuang roared until his face turned red and his neck turned thick. He threw the imperial edict to Mother Zhuang and let her read it herself.
If you want to go with her, go. No one will stop you!
Lord Zhuang did not want to see Zhuang Mei for even a moment. Send her away quickly!
Mother Zhuang fell to the ground in a daze and allowed the servants to take Zhuang Mei away with her mouth covered.
Zhuang mother struggled internally, but in the end, she couldnt bring herself to say that she wanted to go to the nunnery.
Mei er, just you wait. Mother will definitely find a way to save you!
Zhuang Mei struggled frantically and shook her head. Tears and snot flowed down her face. The old woman who was pulling her almost lost her grip and directly knocked her out with a hand knife. The world fell silent.
At the same time, Zhuang Meis actions in the pce had already spread throughout the streets and alleys of the capital. Now, they could only watch helplessly as the Zhuang family sent Zhuang Mei to the nunnery.
At the same time, everyone in the capital knew that the Emperors sister, the Eldest Princess family, was the Emperors reverse scale.
When the otherdies saw that Beauty Zhuang had been banished from the pce, they were tempted. After all, it was Beauty Zhuang who had doted on Sheng En in the past. Now that Beauty Zhuang was no longer around, it was their turn.
Therefore, they all put in all their effort and dressed up gorgeously, wanting to have a chance encounter with the emperor and then naturally seed.
It was a pity that imagination was beautiful, but reality was cruel. After a month, he had not even seen the Emperor..
Chapter 630 - 630: Empress Candidate
Chapter 630 - 630: Empress Candidate
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
During this period of time, Su Luo and MO Ruyue had been busy building the coastal resort. How could she have the time to meet those people by chance? Even if she had the time, she couldnt be bothered to look at them.
The main reason was that those beautiful women were sent to the pce with a purpose. From the bottom of his heart, he was against interacting with those people.
When the country was at peace, those ministers who had nothing to do began to stir again. They felt that their country could not continue without an empress, and the emperor could not continue without an heir.
Many of the officials were in cahoots with each other. Seeing that the Emperor was in a good mood, they shouldnt anger Long Yan by bringing up these matters.
Especially those ministers who had daughters sent to the pce.
If theres anything, report. If theres nothing, retreat!
l have something to report!
Sullo looked at the minister and didnt say anything. His eyes signaled for him to say something. The minister had already stood up and couldnt retreat anymore. He closed his eyes and took a gamble.
As the saying goes, a country cannot be without a ruler for a day. Simrly, the harem cannot be without an heir for a day!
We believe that the Emperor should confer the title of Empress,mand the six pces, and give birth to a son as soon as possible for the future of the Nortnd.
The official closed his eyes and finished his sentence in one breath. He thought that the Emperor would lose his temper. He had already thought about it. If the Emperor was furious, he would kneel down and kowtow.
Everything he said was for the sake of the royal family of the Nortnd. He was so loyal and devoted to the country. It was impossible for him to be punished.
Are you done?
The minister did not expect the emperor to say such a light sentence. At this moment, one could not see the joy or anger on his face, but for no reason, his calves had already begun to tremble.
Ive finished my sentence.
Sullo nodded and looked at the ministers below.ls that what you all think?
Do you all think that I should appoint an empress to give birth to a son?
None of the ministers made a sound. They saw that the Emperor was expressionless, and the more he was like this, the more afraid they were.
When the official who reported the situation saw that those people were all cowering and gnashing their teeth, he cursed them in his heart for being cowards.
They had agreed that he would submit a memorial and they would agree to it. In the end, he was the only one standing in front of the Emperor. If the Emperor were to get angry, wouldnt he be in trouble?
The more he thought about it, the more his legs trembled.
If you all have this idea, then stand out and say it. Zhen has to see if there are many people before it is worth considering whether to appoint an empress.
If he was the only one who had such thoughts, it meant that this matter waspletely unnecessary.
The ministers looked at each other, and soon, half of them stood up.
Oh Quite a lot.
Sullo saw who was in the world.
Then tell me, where did this empresse from?
Who should he establish?
Youre the one who started this, so Im sure you have the best candidate in mind.
Sullo gestured to the minister who had reported,
This
He wanted to say that he wanted to make his daughter the empress, but he really did not dare to say that.
Su Luo saw that he couldnte up with a suitable candidate for a long time, so she didnt make things difficult for him. Then, she pointed at another minister who stood up. That minister couldnt say anything either, so Su Luo pointed at the ministers who stood up for her to be the empress one by one. In the end, no one dared to say who was suitable.
Sigh, then I dont understand. You dont even have a suitable candidate and you want me to be an empress. Are you kidding me?
Su Luosst sentence was clearly in a serious tone. The minister who was the first to bear the brunt was so scared that he immediately knelt down and kowtowed.
Emperor, please calm down!
Those who stood out to support this minister also knelt down. The others who did not support him also knelt down. The dragon was furious, so who dared to stand still?
What? Zhen is still young, but you are already in a hurry to make Zhen have a son. After giving birth to a son, do you want to immediately make a heir?
Do you think that you are cursing me for not living long?
When Sullo said this, all the ministers prostrated on the ground, trembling as they said in unison,Your Majesty, please calm down. This official has no such intentions!
No such intention?
I see that your intentions are written all over your faces!
Emperor, please calm down!
We have no such intention!
l think you guys are too full to do anything. Youve already stretched your hands into my harem. Do you still want to be my master one day? Because I dont want to appoint an empress, you want me to abdicate and give up my position!
Emperor, please calm down!
We have no such intention!
Anyone who suggests that 1 appoint thetter will be fined three months of sry. Reflect on yourself and go back to see if your wives and concubines have been sorted out!
Sullo left angrily. If it wasnt for the fact that a few of those ministers were still useful, he really wanted to drag them all out and behead them.
Who gave them the right to be in charge of heaven and earth and even care about his wife and children?
As expected, this emperor was really boring.
The ministers who had suggested that the Emperor should erect a queen were really bleeding from the wounds on their heads. Only when there was no movement in the hall for a long time did someone secretly raise their heads. However, when they saw that the Emperors figure had long disappeared from the dragon throne, they all got up and went home.
In the pavilion of the imperial garden, MO Ruyue and Nanny Rong were feeding the triplets some apples when Qin Zilu suddenly opened her small arms in the direction they hade from.
Hug.
MO Ruyue turned around and saw that her big brother had arrived. Moreover, he hadnt changed into his yellow robe.
All of Su Luos bad mood disappeared when she saw the triplets. At this moment, Qin Zilu looked at her with a longing gaze. She opened her small arms at him and immediately picked her up.
At the same time, Qin Zilus small hand grabbed the tassel gold bead on Su Luffs head.
Who made you angry?
Even though he had concealed it well, MO Ruyue could still tell that Big Brother had been very angry.
Those shameless old things actually urged me to give birth to a child. Look at them!
Then what do you n to do?
MO Ruyue was indeed a little angry when she heard this. However, her elder brother was indeed at the age where he should get married. However, as a rtive. she did not want her elder brother to casually marry a woman he was unfamiliar with or did not like.
Of course, I have the final say in my matters. Even if I want to make an empress, I will make the person I like the empress.
Do they think I dont know what theyre thinking?
Since theyre so free and so nosy, Ill let them know the consequences of being nosy. Ill let them never dare to mention the matter of letting me give birth to a child in front of me again!
Yes, I support Big Brother.
Younger sister is still the best.
Lets not talk about the fact that those people are not worth my effort.
Younger sisters, are you really leaving? Why dont you stay for a while longer?
Nio Ruyue looked at her eldest brother with a gaze that said, Are you willing to leave me here alone and make me a loner?
Big Brother, can you not be like this? Isnt there still a few days before we leave?
MO Ruyue felt her heart ache when she saw her elder brothers pitiful state. However, they couldnt stay here forever. Her elder brother, as the Emperor, couldnt follow them to Xi Liang. It seemed that she should find an Empress for her elder brother.
However, it was not easy to find a candidate for the empress. First, it had to be liked by his elder brother.
Thinking of the girl that her brother had told her about, she felt that it was really not easy to find such a person..
Chapter 631 - 631: Playing Crazy
Chapter 631 - 631: ying Crazy
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Okay, okay, you can help me open up the resort beach and you can go back. Im not that unreasonable, as long as you cane and visit me a few times a year.
Seeing that her sister was in a difficult position, Su Luo immediatelypromised.
Ten dayster, the court was filled with civil and military officials who had nothing to report. They thought that they could withdraw from court, but the Emperor spoke.
The Eldest Princess is holding a family barbecue buffet at Fisherman Bay tomorrow. If you have nothing to do, bring your family and friends to support the event.
You all know that my sister has just returned to the Nortnd. Other than me, her elder brother, she doesnt have any rtives or friends.
In other words, you guys have to go and support them.
All the officials in the court dared to say that they were not going. Since the Emperor had spoken, whoever dared to say that they were not going would be disrespecting the Emperor.
He immediately said sensibly, We are fortunate enough to be able to participate in the Eldest Princess banquet, so we will definitely be thick-skinned and disturb you.
They had heard about the Fishermans Bay. They heard that there were many independent small courtyards built by the sea. They were quite beautiful, but they didnt know what they were used for. Now they understood that it was the Eldest Princesss doing.
You wont regret it if you go.
Su Luo was very satisfied with the performance of all the civil and military officials. He did not feel that he was using his power to suppress others. He was tantly using his power to suppress others.
Many of those officials were richer than him. How could they not contribute? He even hoped that a few rich people wouldmit crimes quickly so that he could have a legitimate reason to confiscate their property.
Perhaps it was because he had been too swift and decisive ever since he became the emperor. Those ministers were all as obedient as grandchildren, and none of themmitted any major crimes.
For small matters such as making him an empress, he could only punish him with a sry.
Many ministers had been punished by him for various reasons and could not receive their sries for one or two years. He felt that it was too much.
Su Luo gave her father-inw a look.
Retreat!
The next day, the holiday beach that MO Ruyue nned officially opened.
All the influential figures in the capital had arrived at Fishermans Bay early that day.
There was only one reason why they were here. Fishermans Bay was a barbecue buffet organized by the eldest Princess of the Nortnd, who had just returned from overseas.
Barbecue was no stranger to northerners.
Just because of the Eldest Princess name, these people had toe. Moreover, they heard that the Eldest Princess had organized this family barbecue buffet in the hope that she could see a girl she liked at the meeting. At that time, she would be brought into the pce.
If there was someone who was capable, she might be the Empress of the Northern Kingdom. That was a blessing that had been umted over several lifetimes.
They did not dream that their youngdy would be chosen by the Eldest Princess. Even among the civil and military officials who came today, it would be their luck to be able to befriend one or two of them.
This Eldest Princess Princess was really the Emperors reverse scale, the treasure of his heart. She tantly wanted to find a harem for the Emperor, but not only was the Emperor not unhappy, he even allowed her to apany him.
The officials in the capital still remembered that a month and a half ago, they had only mentioned in court that the Emperor should appoint an empress and had been fined three months of sry. If there was any discord in their own backyard, they would be reprimanded by the Emperor. Until today, when those officials went to court every day, they were afraid that there would be any discord in their own backyard. If the Emperor found out, they would be reprimanded. They had be theughing stock of the entire capital.
What was even more terrifying was that the daughters and nieces of any family who entered the pce were sent back home. In a month and a half, almost all the beautiful women in the pce were sent back.
These ministers finally discovered the other side of the Emperor. He would seek revenge for the smallest grievance. From then on, he was even more careful in handling matters. Other than matters that were necessary for his duties, he would not say anything else.
When they arrived at Fishermans Bay, they thought that the barbecue on the beach had already started and that the Eldest Princess would look at the daughters of the various families. However, that was not the case at all.
They saw the emperor leading the Eldest Princess family, tightening his sleeves and trousers, wearing special waterproof leather boots, digging sand on the beach and picking up fish and prawns on the rocky beach.
There were also many people who looked like fishermen beside them. They were also picking up seafood on the beach.
Hoeing the crops at noon, sweat dripping into the soil, who knew that every grain of food on the te was hard work!
The children on the beach sang a poem. At first, those people did not understand it, but as they listened, they understood the true meaning of the poem.
Among the civil and military officials, there were also Su Luos confidants.
They knew about the Fishermans Bay event and took the lead to bring their entire family to the sea.
When the yers who understood the situation saw this, they all followed suit. Today, they were here to support the game!
Some of the officials families were initially unwilling to go down to the sea. They felt that it was dirty, hot, and smelly. However, when they saw that everyone else had participated, and that the Eldest Princess had also participated, they thought about the purpose ofing today and gritted their teeth to follow. Otherwise, they would feel that they were the ones who were out of the ordinary.
In the end, they felt that it was quite fun, something they had never experienced before.
Especially in thest segment, when he ate the seafood he picked up and roasted it himself. He dipped it in his own dipping sauce and felt especially fresh and sweet.
Especially when he saw his family eating the seafood that they had picked up and roasted for themselves. He was very happy and blissful when he received praise.
During the barbeque, the children began to sing the song of Hoeing Millet in the Noon. It sounded like it was true.
As the saying goes, if you dont take charge of the household, you dont know how expensive the rice, oil, and salt are. If you dont personally work, you wouldnt know that these delicacies are so hard toe by.
None of the families wasted anything. All the seafood that they had picked up was eaten up.
Of course, the inedible food had been checked by the people of Fishermans Bay before they roasted it.
Those girls still wanted to catch the Eldest Princess eye, so they all maintained the behavior of the daughters of noble families. As for those younger boys, they let go and yed however they wanted.
MO Ruyue had even set up three sets of swing, slide, seesaw, climbing, sand digging tools, and other facilities for the children to y at the beach. The older children could still hold back a little, but the younger ones could not help but y crazily.
This was because they had never yed like this before. There were people guarding the safety of the children. When they saw the children fighting, they would say that any child who did not follow the rules could not y. Everyone followed the instructions of the guards and lined up well.
Some of the older schrs did not like to personally go to the beach to pick up seafood. They could also go to the reef beach and set up a small stool that was suitable for fishing.
Anyone who liked fishing would have a little ink in their hearts. Facing the vast and boundless sea, their minds would also be broadened. When their interest was aroused, they could even recite a poem or two.
When the womenfolk felt tired from ying by the sea, they could go to the small courtyards at the back to rest.
There were all kinds of facilities inside. They could wash up and change clothes. It was very considerate.
These people had a lot of fun and were a little tired, but they all thought that if their rtives and friends came in the future, they could bring them over to experience it.
Especially those who had children at home. Looking at the childrens happy and innocent smiles, they felt that it was worth it even if there was nothing at all..
Chapter 632 - 632: Little Crown
Chapter 632 - 632: Little Crown
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Sister, its not early. Look at how sleepy Zilu is. Lets hurry back.
Although it wasnt the first time the triplets had seen so many people, it was rare for them to be so excited. They had yed too much and didnt even sleep for an afternoon nap. They still wanted to y in the afternoon, but their eyelids were already fighting. They were very sleepy. Su Luffs heart ached when she saw her three nephews like this.
As his biological parents, MO Ruyue and Gu Ying were also distressed.
Hence, Gu Ying stood on the high tform and struck the gong. Everyone, be quiet.
Many people surrounded him.
This stage has a performance, so well sing for the time being. There would be a nice script in theter stages, and he would inform them in advance.
In a while, a famous troupe from the capital woulde over to perform. If anyone was interested, they coulde over and watch.
Lets talk about something else.
I see that everyone is having a good time at the beach. Then, we have achieved our goal of organizing this meeting.
We call these small courtyards by the sea vacation houses. You can also think of them as inns by the sea. Everyone can go there to rest when they are tired.
Today, I invited everyone here mainly to let them experience the warm experience of being together as a family and promote the meaning of kinship between families.
At the same time, they could also invite three or five friends over to eat barbecue and chat. They could enhance the friendship between friends and enjoy the beautiful mountains and rivers of the north together.
If everyone likes this Family by the Beach BBQ buffet, pleasee and support us in the future.
You can ask the waiter in blue for the details.
Once again, we thank everyone foring. As the triplets at home are too young and are dozing off again, we will excuse ourselves first.
Everyone, have fun!
These very modern lines were of course written by MO Ruyue. Gu Ying just read them and added some of his own words. It was easy.
MO Ruyue had also decided on the script that he was going to say on stage.
After transmigrating, how could he let the Four Great ssics be buried? There were many other interesting storybooks, or some talented people who felt that they had a story in their hearts but had nowhere to express it. They could submit them. If the quality was good, they could take it up and tell it when the time came.
At the same time, those who came over also understood that the Eldest Princess had made such a big scene to promote this side.
What happened to looking at each other?
Someone whispered at the side. Although their trip today was not in vain, their original purpose was not to y.
Eldest Princess has never said it before, right? It seems that other people are just talking to themselves and thinking that they are blindly guessing.
The family members of the ministers on Sullos side expressed their views.
Those people thought that the Eldest Princess indeed did not let anyone say that today she was specially here to let the Emperor see the harem.
Who was the first to spread it? That person is reallyReally.
No matter how rude they were, they were too embarrassed to say it out loud since there were so many people.
Who cares? I saw a good girl for my son today.
This trip was worth it.
Also, my two little monkeys are having a great time over there. They said that they woulde often in the future.
Thats right. Ive never seen these strange things before.
My little monkey actually knows how to be filial. He roasted all the seafood he picked up for us to eat first. Its indeed sweeter than eating at home, haha.
Yes, yes. Even my husband said that this trip was not in vain. He even said that he would bring our family over when he was free in the future.
There was also a ce to rest when they were tired.
Youve really eaten, drank, and yed well.
Thats right. I just asked the one in blue. Its free to enter the venue for sightseeing. There are times when you can stay in the small courtyard. There are also times when you can rent it for a whole day or a few days. The longer you rent it, the cheaper it is.
If you dont want to pick up the seafood yourself, you can also buy it from them. The price is not expensive. You just want to do it yourself to improve the rtionship between the family
Although these people did not care much about the few taels of silver, they still felt that it was very cost-effective. The main reason was that it could allow the family to strengthen their rtionship together, and the children could eat happily and y happily.
The madams were all talking about their experience in this trip in twos and threes. In short, they all had good reviews.
It could be seen that the opening of Fisherman Bay Resort was very smooth.
MO Ruyue stayed in the Nortnd for another three days. Fishermans Bay Resort had a good future. Many people came to visit every day for the past three days. She was relieved. At least this project would not lose money.
Su Luo had no excuse to keep her sisters family here. She was very reluctant to leave and kept hugging Qin Zilu, unwilling to let go.
Nan Nan, you said that youre going back. Uncle misses you so much that he doesnt want to eat or drink.
Su Luo nagged at Qin Zilu, not caring if she could understand or not.
Qin Zilu looked at her uncle with her eyes wide open. She thought that her uncle was teasing her, so she gave him the most innocent and sincere smile. The six small teeth that she revealed were especially cute.
You heartless little thing. Youll definitely forget about Uncle when you go back. I dont know if youll remember Uncle the next time we meet.
The more Su Luo spoke, the more pitiful she felt. The more she spoke, the sadder she became. In the end, Qin Zilu suddenly leaned on his face and kissed him.
Aiyo, you little rascal. You even put a curse on uncle at thest minute.
Big brother.
MO Ruyue was also reluctant to part with them, but they could not take root in the Nortnd. After all, their family business was in Xiliang.
Alright, stop crying. Im not waiting for Little Orange.
As Su Luo spoke, the father-inw called Little Orange trotted over, holding a square brocade box in his hand.
Su Luo returned Qin Zilu to MO Ruyue. Dont get on the carriage yet. Let Zilu see if she likes the gift I gave her.
Since they were about to leave, MO Ruyue agreed to any of her brothers requests. She only wanted to see a gift.
However, when her brother opened the brocade box, her eyes widened when she saw what was inside.
Big Brother, you spoil her too much. How am I going to raise my child if you spoil her?
What do you care if Im happy? If you dont want it, I cant wait to raise it.
Su Luo took out the gift that she had specially prepared for Qin Zilu from the brocade box. It was actually a small crown that was simr to the one he wore when he went to court. It was decorated with golden tassels and gold beads. The crown was iid with various gemstones. It was obviously expensive.
Su Luo directly put the small crown on Qin Zi t s head. Because it was for her, the crown hat was wrapped in high-quality silk to make it especially soft.
Because the small crown was iid with many different colored gems, it was a little different from the real crown. One look and one could tell that it was specially made for children to wear and y with.
After Qin Zilu put on the cromm, she shook her head, and the tassel in front of her swayed with it, making tinkling sounds. She giggled non-stop and pped her hands happily.
If MO Ruyue were to say that this gift was too expensive, Big Brother would definitely turn hostile.
Su Luo also saw her sisters expression and said unhappily,Dont worry, Ive engraved the royal design of the Nortnd on it. Shell wear it wherever she goes.
Anyway, he was the emperor. He had the final say on the specifications of the jewelry. He could bring it if he said so.
What else could MO Ruyue and Gu Ying say?
However, Gu Ying always had a sense of crisis and wanted to leave the Nortnd as soon as possible. He felt that if he did not leave now, his daughter would be his brother-inw..
Chapter 633 - 633: Returning to the Capital
Chapter 633 - 633: Returning to the Capital
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The moon had its ups and downs, and people had their joys and sorrows. Seeing that it was gettingte, Sullo didnt dy them and urged them to hurry.
Lilu, Zichao, thank you for your kindness.
Nio Ruyue had been teaching the triplets some simple hand gestures, and they all remembered them. Listening to her mothers words, she also knew that her uncle was Su Luo, and she waved her little hands at him happily.
In their world, if they met again, it meant that their mother was going to take them out to y. Arent they happy?
Su Luo wished she could snatch one over. She turned around without hesitation. Out of sight, out of heart. She waved her hand behind her.
After her sisters family left, Su Luffs heart had been empty. She couldnt lift her spirits all day and had really be a loner.
On the way back to Xi Liang, MO Ruyue and the others basically sent Su Luo a letter of peace every day. The letter also had the three little fellows doodles or handprints.
Eldest Brother is too lonely alone, but he cant find a girl he likes. This isnt the right thing to do. Lets go back and ask around for him. You have to ask around.
After sending another letter, it was time for the triplets to go to bed. The nannies carried them to the carriage at the back. There was only MO Ruyue and Gu Ying in the carriage. MO Ruyue could not help but think of her eldest brothers reluctant look when they left.
And 1 think its not that Big Brother cant find Kexin in the Nortnd. Its just that he has a defensive and annoying attitude towards the Nortnders, so hes not willing to find her at all.
If he were to find a girl from Xi Liang, he would have to find someone with a good family background. Otherwise, it would not be easy for him to establish himself in the northern country.
Ill keep an eye out. When the timees, Ill ask Ji Hong to keep an eye out for us too.
They wanted to see if anyone was willing to go through a marriage alliance. Most people would probably not be willing to let their daughters marry far away.
Even if Su Luo was the emperor, those who really doted on their daughter would not be willing to do so. If they were that materialistic, they would not have introduced the daughter of such a family to Su Luo.
Yes, theres no rush. Im also anxious!
If there was a suitable one, it would be better for the two of them to meet first and get to know each other better.
Okay, Ill listen to you.
As MO Ruyue spoke, she fell asleep unknowingly from the rocking of the carriage.
Gu Ying looked at his wife who was sleeping soundly on hisp, feeling satisfied.
Especially with his brother-inw there topare, he felt that he was so lucky to have married such a good wife. He was really too blessed.
The carriage swayed. This time, they took a shortcut and arrived at the capital of Xi Liang half a monthter.
As soon as they entered the capital, many people were waiting at the city gate to wee them.
There was the Empress Dowager, the Empress Dowager, the Xue family, the Escort Agency, the Princesss Mansion, and the Lonely Shadow. A few students in the capital were waiting here. Among them was Xiong Qiu from the Imperial Academy.
MO Ruyue and Gu Ying greeted them and thanked them. In the end, they followed the people sent by the Empress Dowager into the pce.
Of course, their entire family entered the pce. This was also the Empress Dowager and Empress Dowagers will.
The Empress Dowager and the Empress missed the triplets, so she had to let them enter the pce to see them.
He would also not neglect the other children in MO Ruyues family. He had to treat them equally, but he loved the triplets the most. After all, the triplets were the most loved at this time.
MO Ruyue counted with her fingers. The little crown prince was now three years old. It was time for the empress to have another child.
Their triplets were cherished wherever they went. Even the three-year-old little prince liked the triplets very much. As soon as the triplets entered the pce, he would take out all his favorite things for his younger brothers and sisters to y with.
MO Ruyue was really afraid that the three children would grow up to bewless.
The Empress Dowager and the Empress Dowager were also done kissing the triplets. The children were babbling in infantnguage. MO Ruyue began to tell the Empress Dowager and the Empress Dowager about the culture of the Nortnd. The two of them listened attentively.
After MO Ruyue and the others had their lunch in the pce, the Empress Dowager and the Empress knew that they had been rushing for half a month and wanted them to have a good rest, so they let them return to the Princess
Manor.
It was already afternoon. They did not n to return to West River Vige. They would stay in the princesss manor for a night before returning tomorrow.
MO Ruyue took the children to take an afternoon nap, but Gu Ying was no longer by her side.
Nanny Rong and Chun Hua heard themotion and came in to serve.
When he arrived at the hall, he realized that there was a guest at home. It was none other than Xiong Qiu who hade to visit his teacher.
MO Ruyue felt that this Bear Qiu was quite respectful towards his teachers. He had indeed grown a lot, unlike when he had just arrived at West River Vige, where he was practically the overlord of the academy.
Greetings, Madam.
No need to be so polite. Is everything alright in the Hanlin Academy?
MO Ruyue had just finished her question when her sleeve was tugged twice. She turned around and saw Qin Qingting, indicating that she needed something.
l brought my younger siblings out to y.
When Qin Qingting said that she would bring her younger siblings to y, the nannies and maids nodded in agreement.
Guying asked Qin Qingyan and Qin Qinghao to stay behind. The two boys would be the pirs of the family in the future. They couldnt just think about ying all day. They had to get in touch with people and things outside. Except for important matters to discuss with the emperor, Guying would let them listen to the rest of the time.
Qin Qingting wanted to inherit MO Ruyues mantle, so she didnt force her to listen. Besides, that girl was very clever.
Ill go too.
Qin Qingshuang said and followed Qin Qingting out.
Xiong Qiu was still considered an outsider. She felt ufortable in the house. She was the gentlest girl in the Qin family, but she was also much better than the girls in other families.
Xiong Qiu forced himself not to look at Qin Qingshuang. He only heaved a sigh of relief after she had left. He talked to Gu Ying and MO Ruyue about the things he could talk about in the Imperial Academy.
He would also ask Gu Ying questions that he could not understand.
After he finished talking about his own matters, he even asked them impolitely how the northern country was like. Was it very cool there now?
Nio Ruyue and Gu Ying felt that their trip to the Nortnd was quite good. The children also liked it very much, especially the sea trip. They could have fun and eat well at the same time. It was very meaningful.
Xiong Qiu was very interested. He also expressed that if he wanted to go out and broaden his horizons in the future, he would definitely go to the Nortnd first.
Seeing that it was gettingte, Xiong Qiu reluctantly stood up and prepared to leave.
Ever since he entered the Hanlin Academy, he still missed his days in West River Vige. However, the Hanlin Academy only had one or two days off each time, which was not enough for him to go back and forth to West River
Vige. Even if he went there at full speed, he could only stay for one night. The rest of the time was spent on the road. Therefore, this rare meeting made him forget the time.
If you have nothing to do when you go back, stay for dinner in the residence.
MO Ruyues words were more effective than Gu Yings words. Actually, Xiong Qiu was also very happy to be able to stay in the Princesss manor for a meal.
Then Ill be thick- skinned and disturb you.
Just dontin that the food tastes bad.
The food at Masters wifes ce is the best Ive ever eaten, Xiong Qiu said earnestly.
Because Xiong Qiu was someone they were familiar with, there were no male and female tables.
Xiong Qiu paid special attention to his manners while eating. At the same time, he was a little excited. Even his favorite delicacies could not capture his attention. From time to time, he wanted to look at the little beauty diagonally opposite him.
However, he still had a sense of propriety. He couldnt be rude to others, nor could he do anything that would make him lose hisposure.
For example, if he wanted to look, he could only peek out of the corner of his eye when he lowered his head to eat..
Chapter 634 - 634: Can’t Coax Anyone
Chapter 634 - 634: Cant Coax Anyone
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Qin Qingyan had always been trained to be the head of the family, so he had learned how to entertain guests. He saw Xiong Qiu only eating the in white rice in his bowl and thought that he was too embarrassed to pick up the food, so he picked up some for him with the chopsticks.
Xiong Qiu thanked him and ate them all.
Qin Qingyan saw that all the food he put in his bowl had been eaten up, so he thought that he liked it very much, so he kept putting food in his bowl.
Xiong Qiu was so full that he didnt miss his food. He kept eating when there was food in his bowl, afraid that he would reveal any clues and let others find out. In the end, after a meal, he was so full that his stomach was bulging. He felt that he didnt have to eat for two days.
After dinner, Xiong Qiu said goodbye. His home was in the capital, so MO Ruyue and Gu Ying had nothing to worry about. They asked the servant boy to send him out, and they also washed up and went to bed early.
The next day, the family got up in the middle of the night and dressed neatly. After breakfast, they hurried back to Xihe Vige.
Because they thought it would be best to get home that night, so that they wouldnt have to spend the night on the road, so they had to rush early. As for the pce, when they left the pce yesterday, they had already bid farewell to the Emperors family.
After boarding the carriage, MO Ru Yue and the others fell asleep. The carriage was soft and the weather was gradually turning cold. It was neither hot nor cold. The journey was rocky, but they did not feel any bumps. They were all sleeping soundly.
At noon, they arrived at the branch of the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency. They changed horses at the agency, ate something, and walked a fewps before continuing on their way.
When they reached home, the people driving the carriage had changed three times.
The triplets were very obedient along the way. When they were hungry, they fed them. When they were full, they continued to sleep. The carriage swayed and they slept very well.
In the evening, they stopped at another branch of the Xue Family Bodyguard Agency. After having dinner, they continued on their way. When they reached the Princesss residence in Xihe Vige, it was already 11 p. m.
The princesss manor was brightly lit. Two hourster, Wei Er came back in advance to inform them. At this moment, the servants were waiting at the door to wee the return of the masters. The food and hot water were all prepared.
They had been rushing back all the way, and they could smell something on their bodies. They must have taken a good hot bath to sleep soundly. Besides, they were already home, They could sleep until they woke up naturally tomorrow.
However, the triplets had not washed up. The three of them had been sleeping soundly since they arrived home in the carriage. MO Ruyue and the others slept until noon the next day.
Qin Qingfei was overjoyed to know that her brother, sister-inw, and the children were back. She insisted oning over personally with the two-month-old twins.
Wang TieTiezhu was stubborn, but his wife said he also wanted toe over to take a look, because the child was small, just this small section of the road, he also personally drove the carriage.
Qin Qingfei and the servant girl each carried a child. They sat in the carriage andughed at Wang Tiezhu.
You really arent afraid of beingughed at. If anyone wants tough, thenugh.
Wang Tiezhu did not care at all.
MO Ruyue had already developed a new upational disease. When she saw Qin Qingfei grab her hand, she began to take her pulse.
Youre recovering quite well.
Let me see the two Little Treasure.
As she spoke, MO Ruyue carried the younger sister of the twins.
However, just as the swaddling baby entered his arms, it suddenly cried out three times.
Wah
It turned out that when the triplets saw that their mother was carrying another child, they immediately became unhappy.
It wasnt just one person crying, but three at once. The sound could flip the roof over, and it was the kind that no one could coax.
Aiyo, Sister-inw, quickly return it to me. This little brother and sister are jealous. We cant let them bear a grudge against us, hahaha
MO Ruyue had no choice but to coax her three little ancestors, but the triplets insisted on being carried by their mother.
How could MO Ruyue carry the three of them? However, the three of them refused to let her go. She forced the three of them into a big lump in her arms.
The triplets got what they wanted, and they even turned to look at Qin Qingfeis clueless twins to dere their sovereignty.
Qin Zilu hugged her mothers neck the most domineeringly. Her two brothers were pushed to the back, but they did not dare to fight with her sister because she would beat them up.
Aiyo, who provoked the three little ancestors to make a ruckus in the Heavenly Pce!
Before the man outside the door arrived, the voice came first.
From the sound, it was obvious that Xue Qing had arrived. Behind Xue Qing was Hua Jianan, who was carrying his youngest son.
The gatekeeper had already informed them that Qin Qingfei, Xue Qing, and Qin Rouwan didnt need to be notified when they came. They could just let them in directly.
MO Ruyue still wanted to see Xue Qings youngest son, but the triplets had a premonition. They stayed in her arms and didnt even bring their toys down.
The whole family was amused by the triplets protective appearance.
As they were talking, Qin Rouwan and her husband arrived.
Sister,e in quickly. Did the three of you make an appointment today? MO Ruyue quickly greeted the couple.
Fortunately, they had dug through the mountain road, so it was very close from the town.
Qin Rouwans belly was still a little big. After all, she was a thirty-year-old pregnant woman. It was very slow to recover after giving birth, but it was recovering very well.
Yu Hongsheng had a son now. He couldnt care less about his business and stayed at home with his wife and youngest son every day.
Qin Rouwan wasnt very satisfied. She had given birth to two sons before and wanted to have a daughter. It was good that Yu Hongshengs daughter was on good terms with her, but there was still somethingcking. After all, that girl was now an adult and would be married in two or three years. She did not like to go out when she was older, so she did note with her today.
Of course, she loved her son too.
Mo Ruyue naturally wanted to take Qin Rouwans pulse. It wasnt that she didnt believe in her masters medical skills, but she just wanted to know the exact condition of Qin Rouwans body.
If our families are together, the younger generation will be even livelier than us. Look at how many children there are.
Isnt that so!
The older ones had all gone to school.
It was especially lively when the families were together. The triplets soon forgot about their pregnancy and went to y on the slide with Qin Qingfei and Xue Qings sisters.
They didnt know how to walk or slide down the slide, so the servant girls carried them down the slide. They were happy to y like this.
In the courtyard, the three families naturally asked about MO Ruyues trip to the Northern Kingdom. Gu Ying had gone to the Civil and Martial Arts Institute early in the morning. He was still worried after leaving for almost two months.
Naturally, Mo Ruyue chatted with them. Finally, she said,Oh right, you guys often run around outside and know many people, Ill have to trouble you to pay attention to any girls who are suitable for my big brother.
It didnt matter if they were rich or poor, as long as they had good family background and moral character.
My big brother likes to know some martial arts, has the ability to protect himself, and has a little temper. Hes not the kind of pushover that can be easily bullied.
The three families shook their heads when they heard MO Ruyues request. They didnt know anyone like her.
Sister, 1 say, you two are indeed siblings. Your requirements for choosing a spouse are on par with yours back then. If you hadnt coincidentally met my big brother, you would probably have been alone for the rest of your life.
Haha.
Qin Rouwan immediately recalled MO Ruyues criteria for choosing a spouse..
Chapter 635 - 635: Spouse Selection Standard
Chapter 635 - 635: Spouse Selection Standard
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Hai, at that time, I was annoyed by the matchmakers who came to my door every day. It didnt work even if I said 1 wouldnt get married, so I proposed that kind of difficult mate selection criteria. Who knew that there would really be someone who could do it.
MO Ruyue did not feel embarrassed about it. Although she had only been with Guying for three years, they felt like an old couple. They did not have a love that wouldst until death. It was just an ordinary rtionship. They understood each other.
Hahahaha, Sister-inw, youre right!
This is called a match made in heaven!
Qin Qingfei was also bursting intoughter.
Isnt that so?
MO Ruyue thought so too, and everyoneughed even more when she said that.
By the way, sister-inw, your brother is the emperor of the Northern Kingdom. Didnt he miss out on one of the criteria for choosing a spouse?
If they were illiterate, how would they manage the harem?
This family business was not ordinary.
Youre really ttering us by asking us to find such a girl for you.
It was a fact that Xue Qing had grown more.
It doesnt matter if you dont know how to read. You can teach it slowlyter.
Its not difficult.
They didnt think that they could read, and they didnt care about that.
Sister-inw, I think you should go to the capital to find such a girl. Its impossible to meet someone like her in the countryside.
Do you think everyone is you?
I think its impossible that we cant find it.
Qin Qingfei continued. She had thought about it seriously. She didnt know anyone like that. The only people who were simr were her sister-inw and Xue Qing.
Qin Rouwan and Xue Qing nodded. As for the three men, they were still thinking hard about whether there was such a family.
Aiyo, sister-inw, I suddenly realized that big brother doesnt want to get married, so I deliberately put forward such a difficult standard for choosing a spouse.
However, Big Brother is the ruler of a country, so its only natural for him to have higher requirements. However, we really dont know anyone like him. But dont worry, Sister-inw. Ill definitely keep an eye out for you.
Following Xue Qings words, everyone present nodded to show that they agreed.
MO Ruyue heard what they said and felt that it was not impossible. However, this was the only way now. She could not be anxious.
She did not want her brother to marry a random girl and fool around for the rest of his life. That would make his heart ache even more.
When he was in the pce, he told Ji Hong, the Empress Dowager, and the Empress that he had asked them to keep an eye out for such a girl. At that time, the expressions of the three of them were the same as their expressions now.
He hoped that his eldest brother could meet the girl he liked.
It had been almost two months since their families had gathered together. They had been in confinement, so the other three families hadnt had the chance to gather together. However, Qin Rouwan and Xue Qing, who were in town, would asionally gather together. The families naturally had to have a good meal at noon to improve their rtionship.
Gu Ying had also returned. During lunch time, the servants went to fetch all the children back. They even went to town to fetch Doctor Qin and Hua Mingliang. There were a total of three tables. There were ten children alone, and not even one table could sit. This was not counting the few children from the few families. Including the seven children, there were seventeen children.
Qin Rouwans family had four, Qin Qingfeis family had four, Xue Qings family had two, and MO Ruyues family had at most seven.
The scene was as lively as the New Year.
An hour after dinner, the older children went to school again. The seven children were at home. The triplets loved to y with Qin Qingfei and Xue Qings two three-year-old children.
Qin Zilu insisted on wearing the little crown that her uncle had given her. Although she was only eleven months old, she knew that she had to be pretty. She put on the crown and let Chun Hua pull her around in front of the little brothers and sisters.
This little crown was not only beautiful but also eye-catching. The tassels were flickering. No child could resist it when they saw it. This little child who could not walk made the little brothers and sisters cry.
The few of them understood immediately when they came out, but those families were very surprised.
MO Ruyue exined to them the origin of the crown and asked Chun Hua to put it away. This time, it was Qin Zilus turn to cry. MO Ruyue tried to coax her for a while but to no avail. In the end, she couldnt help but spank her butt.
Everyone thought that the roof would be overturned, but Qin ZilZilu quieted down and behaved obediently.
Look, even if you cant walk or talk, youre born to know how to read eyes. You just need to be taught a lesson.
Nio Ruyue was quite happy. At least this child had someone to be afraid of.
Time passed. Five years had passed in a blink of an eye.
Today was Qin Qingshuangs wedding day.
Qin Qingshuang had inherited the good looks of the Qin family. As a woman, she changed a lot and became more and more attractive.
Ever since she returned from her trip to the Nortnd five years ago, apart from going to the Womens College, she would also go to Qin Qingfei, Xue Qing, and Qin Rouwans homes. If there was nothing particrly urgent, she would not go anywhere else.
He was like a youngdy from a wealthy family, but this was only on the surface. In reality, it was because he was too beautiful. It was especially annoying to go out and mess around.
In order to stop those annoying people from bothering him, Qin Qingshuang was so angry that she destroyed her image and beat them up. However, she still couldnt stop those people from swarming over.
In the end, she was so angry that she learned from her sister-inw and set an extremely high standard for choosing a spouse.
First of all, she had to wait until she was 18 before getting married. She would not consider it before that.
Then there were the requirements for the man: First of all, the mans family had to be clean and refreshing. If there were no parents to control, he would even self-destruct his image and say that he had a bad temper. If he was controlled by his mother-inw, he might be rough to his mother-inw.
Then, the man had to be extremely talented and nine feet tall,pletely modeled after his big brother. He couldnt be ugly either. Actually, even if he couldnt be ugly, he had to be handsome, and he had to be able to match the two poems she wrote herself.
Most importantly, she had to be the head of the household.
These conditions required a contract to be signed.
Now, Qin Qingshuang had made great achievements in her studies. She had graduated from the Womens College the year beforest. When she had nothing to do, she loved to read. It was not an exaggeration to say that she had read thousands of books. She had traveled thousands of miles and even made a trip to the northern country once a year. She had seen a lot and was a very knowledgeable woman.
If it werent for the fact that Xi Liang Country didnt allow girls to take the imperial examinations, MO Ruyue felt that she would have no problem passing the imperial examinations.
MO Ruyue was also troubled by Qin Qingshuangs request for a spouse. She felt that she had not brought this up properly.
However, no matter what, she was still her child. She also felt that her child was worthy of the conditions that she had proposed. If she wanted to add two more conditions, it would be fine.
However, countless talented people hade to propose marriage and even deliberately showed off in front of Qin Qingshuang just to let her understand it herself. It was kind of them. MO Ruyue had taken a fancy to a few of the people she thought were pretty good. The one she was most satisfied with was Xiong Qiu, but Qin Qingshuang was not interested in him at all.
She was growing up year by year. Even if she wouldnt be randomly pulled into the official marriage because of her rtionship, she couldnt just marry someone randomly because of this spouse selection requirement. If she was unlucky, she would be the one suffering..
Chapter 636 - 636: The Big Wedding
Chapter 636 - 636: The Big Wedding
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Nio Ruyue had a headache because of Qin Qingshuangs marriage. She could not eat or sleep well every day. There was another person who worried her even more-her elder brother.
Su Luo was already 30 years old, but there was not even a single beautiful woman in his harem. In the past, there were still a few, but gradually, he found excuses to return them all intact.
Every year when MO Ruyue went to the North Country, she would carefully check his pulse to see if there was anything wrong with his body. In the end, he didnt have any problems, and she would also ask if he had any mental illness. Every time, she would check him closely for a few days and ask him about it. She didnt think that he had any mental problems, and everything was normal. However, he just couldnt get a wife.
In the past few years, she had used all her connections and strictly followed her brothers standards to find girls all over the world. Even if she found ten, he would not be satisfied.
It was only when she went there this year that she realized that her eldest brother had actually allowed Zilu to sit behind him and listen to the court session that she finally lost her temper.
Her elder brother was obviously thinking that she would neither marry nor have children. Moreover, he wanted to pass the throne to her daughter. A schr could tolerate it, but who could not? This was simply nonsense!
He had already worked so hard as the emperor, and he actually wanted her daughter to suffer the same?
It just so happened that MO Ruyues period came a few days ago. After Su Luffs court session, MO Ruyue finally exploded.
At that time, the whole family and even a few children were there, but MO Ruyue could not suppress her anger. Sullo, what are you trying to do?
Is this not fair to the entire Su family?
Who was the one who said that he wanted to leave an heir for the Smiths?
Is letting Zilu, who is only six years old, sit in the court not letting down my sister?
That day, MO Ruyue was hysterical, and the pce maids and eunuchs outside were so frightened that they ran as far away as possible.
The Eldest Princess was really amazing. She could even shout at the Emperor and even call the Emperor by his name. They wanted to poke their ears deaf when they heard this.
What made them even more terrified was that not only was the Emperor not angry, he was even thinking of ways to make his sister happy and make her forgive him. This was simply subverting their three views. Out of sight, out of mind.
The main reason was that they were afraid that the Emperor would settle the score with them after hearing such an amazing thing and wanted to silence them.
After five years, these eunuchs and pce maids understood that the Emperor did not want to be the Emperor of the Nortnd. If it was not for themoners, he would have quit long ago.
And the person he wanted to pass the throne to was Princess Mingzhu of the Eldest Princess family.
In all these years, the family had never seen MO Ruyue so angry. They were all dumbfounded.
Qin Qingshuang knew that her sister-inw had her reasons for doing this. She immediately knelt down in front of her and admitted her mistake.
Sister-inw, dont be angry. Its not good for your health to be angry. You cant be angry at this time. Youre getting married?
Who will you marry?
You dont even have a partner?!
Qin Qingshuang braced herself and said, I-Ill just find someone
You, you, are you trying to anger me to death?
MO Ruyue was so angry that she felt dizzy.
Seeing his wifes heartache, Gu Ying did not dare to do anything to his brother-inw, but he still dared to discipline his sister. Look at how angry youve made my wife! You spoiled me!
If anything happens to her, I wont let you off!
Sister-inw, dont be angry. Its all my fault. Ill go back for a blind date tomorrow. Dont be angry and ruin your health
Qin Qingshuang saw MO Ruyues anger, and her tears fell like a broken string of pearls.
Blind date? Who could still go on blind dates with you now? In the past five years, youve rejected at least a hundred or eighty of them. All the good young talents have be someone elses!
Tell me, who else can you date now?
MO Ruyue said with tears streaming down her face. She was angry.
Su Luffs heart ached when she saw her sister and Qin Qingshuang crying like that. Fortunately, he closed his eyes and revealed the secret that he had been hiding for a long time.
Sister, dont cry. Im going on a blind date with her.
At that time, the entire ce was silent.
The triplets were huddled in a corner as if they were invisible people, not even daring to breathe loudly.
The hall was silent for half an incense sticks time.
Qin Qingshuang looked up at Su Luo. Her big ck eyes were bright because she had just cried.
Are you willing to marry me?
When Su Luo asked this question, she was so nervous that her palms were wet.
Everyone saw that after Su Luo asked her question, Qin Qingshuang subconsciously nodded. She realized that her actions were a little flustered.
It turned out that when Qin Qingshuang first went to the Nortnd, she had admired Su Luo very much. Gradually, she realized that Su Luo had taken root in her heart. This was also the reason why no matter what kind of handsome and talented person came to ask for her hand in marriage, she would not be interested in them. It was because no one else could live in her heart.
As for Sullo. it was the same.
The first time Qin Qingshuang went to the Nortnd, he found that the little girl had grown into a slim and graceful girl. He didnt know when he had thought of that. When he found out, he felt a little shameful. However, the more he tried to stop himself from thinking about it, the more Qin
Qingshuangs shadow grew like weeds in his heart and took root deeply.
Later on, he wanted to wait for Qin Qingshuang to grow up and discover his true feelings. However, this little girl seemed to be ignorant.
He did not know if what he had done was right or wrong. What if the little girl did not like him? So, the two of them had concealed it very well. No one had realized that they actually liked each other. If MO Ruyue had not gotten angry, their rtionship would not have been broken.
Fortunately, everyone was happy.
Qin Qingshuang married Su Luo on the day she turned 18.
Today was the wedding day of the Emperor of the Northern Kingdom. No one else knew about it, but the entire capital was in a festive mood.
It was especially so in the Eldest Princesss residence.
The other four kingdoms had sent envoys to attend the emperors wedding. The envoys from the southeast and other kingdoms went to the pce, but the envoys from Xi Liang went to the Eldest Princess residence.
The envoy of Xi Liang was none other than Xiong Qiu, who had just been promoted and married a wife. He was now the disciple of Hua San Pin. Hua San Pin felt that it was time for him to enjoy his old age and go home to take care of his grandson. He had found a disciple for himself to take over his position, so the envoy sent him here this time.
Of course, he hade as well.
Now, he relied on his old age and often asked the emperor for leave with headaches and fever.
When the Emperor began to know that he was a fake, he did not approve it. Hua Sanpin cried in front of the Emperor that his life was bitter. He was alone in the capital and did not even have a hot meal when he went home. Ever since his three grandchildren were born, he only took time off every year during the New Year to rush back to see them. He was afraid that if he did not retire soon, he would not be able to see his grandchildren in the future.
Ji Hong was annoyed by him. It was not impossible for the court to do without him. Because Gu Yings Civil and Military Academy had sent him more than a dozen schrs from two worlds in session. Now that he could have many talents and the country was peaceful, he pretended to be seriously ill and let him go.
After gaining his freedom, Hua San chased his son, daughter-inw, and grandchildren to the north. He missed his grandchildren so much that he was going crazy.
The envoys from the other countries did not understand. They were here to celebrate the Northern Emperors wedding, so why did the envoys from Xi Liang go to the Eldest Princesss manor?
Im representing my country, Xiong Qiu said proudly. This was also what Ji Hong and the Empress wanted..
Chapter 637 - 637: Awakening the Person in the Dream
Chapter 637 - 637: Awakening the Person in the Dream
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The Empress Dowager and the Empress had disguised themselves and followed Xiong Qiu to the Nortnd.
Originally, the Empress Dowager wanted toe herself. She wanted to help her benefactors son get married, and her heart would be satisfied. The
Empress was worried, so she followed along. Meanwhile, Ji Hong, who was in Xi Liang, was so envious that he was beating his chest and stamping his feet. At home, he was spurring the eight-year-old Crown Prince with all his might.
He decided to wait until the Crown Prince was sixteen years old before passing the throne to him. Thirteen? Ill try it when Im twelve.
The crown princes five-year-old sister and three-year-old brother looked at their somewhat terrifying father and hid behind the crown princes brother in fear. These two children wereter born by the Empress, and they were both natural.
When MO Ruyue saw the Empress Dowager and the Empress, she was so frightened that she almost knelt down.
Why did these two ancestorse so far?
If there was something Pei, pei, pei, pei. He couldnt think about it, he couldnt think about it. He called Qin Qinghao and Qin Qingting over to protect the empress dowager and the empress. The triplets also came over. They liked the imperial grandmother and aunt very much.
Although the triplets were only six years old, they were all martial arts prodigies. They were still able to fight with her at such a young age, so MO Ruyue was so busy that her feet did not even touch the ground.
Today, not only the Empress Dowager and the Empress Dowager hade, but those who were on good terms with them, such as the Qin, Hua, and Wang ns, had alsoe to the Northern Kingdom. MO Ruyue had arranged for them all to stay in the Princesss Manor. Fortunately, her eldest brother had made the Princesss Manor big.
If it wasnt for the fact that it would take at least half a months journey from Xiliang to the Northern Kingdom, Qin Qingshuang would definitely have gotten married in Xiliang. It was precisely because it was too far away that he came to the princesss manor in the north to get married.
The princesss manor was filled with people, but it was not chaotic. The other family members were helping.
When the auspicious time arrived, Qin Qingshuang bade farewell to her sister-inw and brother.
MO Ruyue wanted to help Qin Qingshuang up, but Qin Qingshuang insisted on kneeling down.
Sister-inw, just this once. Let me kneel.
Let her kneel.
Gu Ying pulled MO Ruyue and the two of them sat down in the hall.
Thank you, sister-inw, for loving me, teaching me, and understanding me.
It was Sister-inw who tried her best to protect me from being sold or bullied. She risked her life to go up the mountain to hunt for me to eatPlease teach me how to read and be polite. I cant finish it in three days. Its more than what my biological parents have done. Although my parents passed away long ago, in my heart, sister-inw has long be a mother.
Allow me to call you mother in my heart!
Qin Qingshuang really wanted to call him that, but she couldnt because the person she was going to marry was Su Luo.
As she spoke, two lines of tears fell. The servant girl beside her quickly took a handkerchief and gently wiped away her tears to prevent her makeup from smudging.
MO Ruyues eyes were also red from Qin Qingshuangs words. She tried her best to hold it in, but her vision was getting blurry.
She had always known how much the four children longed for their parents since they were young. She was really touched to hear Qin Qingshuangs words.
Not to mention MO Ruyue, even the people who were listening to the lecture had their eyes reddened, especially Qin Qingfei and Mrs. Wang. They felt that the difficulties of the past were still vivid in their minds.
The two of them cried so hard that they were twitching.
Several of the old men were jealous, especially Qin Qingyan. He remembered how insensible he had been when he was young and how much he had angered his sister-inw. He wished he could punch himself now. He was such a jerk back then.
Qin Qingting saw how sad her aunt was about getting married and became even more determined to find a husband.
Qin Qinghao wasnt as sad as they were because he felt that he was a boy. In the future, he would have to marry a wife and be filial to his mother in old age. This made him feel much better.
The triplets were still young and didnt know those things. They had never lived a hard life, but they felt quite sad when they saw their aunt crying so sadly.
Qin Zilu had already decided that she would visit her aunt more often in the north. If her uncle bullied her aunt, she would help her aunt!
When Qin Zichao and Xue Chengen saw their sisters expression, they knew that she must be thinking of something again. They quietly stayed away from her.
Good sister, get up quickly.
MO Ruyues heart ached when she saw Qin Qingshuang kneeling for such a long time. She also treated them as her own children.
Qin Qingshuang shook her head. She hadnt finished speaking. She couldnt bear to leave home. She hated that women had to marry when they were eighteen.
Shuang is unfilial. In the future, I cant be happy in front of sister-inw. I hope big brother will take good care of sister-inw.
Gu Ying..
So this sister of his was a fake sister. He was waiting for his sister to be touched and say that her elder brother was like a father. In the end, he was told to take good care of her.
Hai, just get married. Otherwise, she would have to stay at home every day and make her wife upset.
Shuang Yi is free, I will definitelye back to show my respect to you.
After Qin Qingshuang kowtowed three times, the nanny quickly covered her with a red veil. Qin Qingvan walked to Qin Qingshuanz and squatted down. Sister,e up. Ill carry you to the wedding. If he treats you badly in the future, Ill definitely support you.
Qin Qingyan thought that his sister would say no, but she said, Alright.
Qin Qingshuang was about to get married, and she was very reluctant to part with everyone in the family.
She leaned against Qin Qingyans ear and whispered,Help me take care of
Aunt Zhou. Her eyes are not good anymore.
Qin Qingshuang had wanted to bring Aunt Zhou to the pce, but Aunt Zhou was unwilling. She preferred her days in Xihe Vige and felt that her hands and feet were tied in the pce. Even with Qin Qingshuang as her backer, she was still within the walls.
Qin Qingshuang didnt insist.
Yes, dont worry, sister. Ill definitely take good care of him.
You have to take good care of yourself.
Even though the princesss manor was four times bigger than the princesss manor in Xi Liang, they soon reached the main gate. Qin Qingyan reluctantly sent Qin Qingshuang to the big sedan chair. MO Ruyue and the others followed him to the gate.
The Eldest Princesss manor was very close to the Imperial Pce, so Qin Qingshuangs bridal sedan made three rounds around the capital before entering through the main gate of the Imperial Pce.
Meanwhile, MO Ruyues entire family was already waiting in the Imperial pce.
The group of ministers who were watching did not know what to say. It was not wrong for the Eldest Princess toe. At this moment, the Eldest Eldest Princess was a rtive of the mans family.
At first, MO Ruyue and the others had not thought of this, but Qin Zilus words had woken them up.
Qin Qingyan carried Qin Qingshuang onto the bridal sedan chair. He wanted to send his sister to the pce, and Qin Zilu followed him. Some people said that their family members could not follow the bridal sedan chair.
Qin Zilu raised her head and said seriously,lm going to my uncles house now. Im a rtive of the mans family. Why cant I go?
Therefore, the whole family went to the pce to wait before Hua Jiao arrived.
The process of the emperor marrying the empress was veryplicated. After one set, it was almost dark.
MO Ruyue and the others were only a little sad when Qin Qingshuang knelt down. Now, they were quite happy. After all, Qin Qingshuang was not married to an outsider. They were very assured of Su Luos character and would definitely not mistreat Qin Qingshuang. Most importantly, the two of them liked each other. This would definitely be a beautiful start.
At the banquet, Su Luo realized that the Empress Dowager and Empress of the Western Liang Kingdom hade. They were very enthusiastic. The host personally toasted to the two of them. At night, the Empress Dowager and Empress naturally stayed in the pce. This was the safest ce.
After all theplicated procedures of the wedding werepleted, Sullo entered the main hall where the Empress lived. He wanted toplete the final consummation ceremony with his little wife.
Su Luo also learned that Qin Qingshuang had knelt down and said goodbye to her sister before she got married. She was so touched that she couldnt help but feel sorry for her little wife..
Chapter 638 - 638: Women’s College
Chapter 638 - 638: Womens College
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Qin Qingshuang was exceptionally beautiful tonight. Su Luo couldnt take her eyes off her. His girl had finally grown up and he had finally married her.
Sullo waved at the pce maids standing at the side, and they all left.
If it were any other emperor, those nannies might have said that this was something they had to do, but Sullo was the most important person here, so no one would refute his words.
Qin Qingshuang was very nervous when she saw Su Luo.
Dont be afraid. You can go back to your mothers house whenever you want.
Ill be with you.
His daughter-inws family was his sister!
This kiss was good!
Qin Qingshuang was very touched. She mustered up the courage to stand up and undress Su Luo.
The next day
Qin Qingshuang slept until the sun was high in the sky in the morning. Su Luo had already returned from court and was looking at his wife silently. If she hadnt been sleeping soundly, he would have lost control.
His wife was too young, so he felt that he had to take it easy.
When Qin Qingshuang opened her eyes, she saw Su Luos smiling face. She almost forgot that she was already married.
Are you hungry?
Ill get the nanny to bring breakfast over. What do you want to eat?
Did I wake up toote?
Its not toote. You just need to know that youre the greatest existence in this pce. No one can interfere with what you want to do.
Even I cant.
His words startled Qin Qingshuang. There were many pce maids and nannies around. How could he say that?
Those nannies and pce maids wanted to go forward to serve the Empress, but the Emperor was here and they didnt dare to go forward, especially now that the Emperor was personally dressing the Empress!! Now that he heard the emperor say these words, he lowered his head so low that he wished he could bury it in his armpits.
Qin Qingshuang was dressed by Su Luo in a daze. Then, the pce maids brought her toiletries and served her.
Are sister-inw and the others still in the pce? Yes.
It was tootest night, so she didnt let them go back.
Then I should go and pay my respects to sister-inw.
Qin Qingshuang also knew that her sister-inw and the others had be Su Luos family again. Su Luo also had no parents, so her sister-inw had be her elder.
As soon as Qin Qingshuang finished speaking, Su Luo chuckled.
Hehehe. You fool, your sister is my sister. You dont have to greet her, she still has to greet youter.
When Qin Qingshuang heard Su Luos words, her mind spun for a moment before she reacted. Thats right. Now that she and Su Luo were married, did that mean that she had be her sister-inws sister-inw?
However, when she heard Su Luo say that her sister-inw was going to pay her respects in a while, she quickly shook her head.
No, no, no. How can I let sister-inw greet me?
Sister-inw is my sister-inw, my biological sister-inw. I treat sister-inw as my mother. Asking sister-inw to pay her respects to me is not going to ruin me. No, no!
Only then did Su Luo realize that her little wife had such a cute side to her.
Hence, he wanted to tease her even more.
Now that youre married to me and my wife, what do you think we should do?
Which one of you is going to call which sister-inw?
Me, me, me. I dont care if sister-inw is my sister-inw!
Alright?
Dont let sister-inw call me sister-inw. I dont dare to agree, and I dont want to agree either.
Lets call her sister-inw as we used to, alright?
Then quickly drink this bowl of soup, and Ill listen to you.
Su Luos heart softened when she saw her little wifesrge, watery eyes. What else could she not agree to?
If he continued to dawdle, the soup would get cold. He personally picked up the bowl and fed her spoonful by spoonful.
Qin Qingshuang looked at the gentle Su Luo and unknowingly finished the bowl of soup obediently. Her stomach was full, and she felt that she could even skip lunch.
As the saying goes, even an ugly daughter-inw has to meet her parents-inw. However, now that she wanted to meet her own family, although she was a little embarrassed, she was not as ufortable and nervous as other daughters-inw.
The family still chose to meet in the imperial garden because it was a big day. They wanted to eat barbecue today.
Roasted suckling pig, roasted wholemb, roasted seafood, and so on. Su Luo apanied Qin Qingshuang as they slowly walked over. From afar, they could hear the childrens cheerfulughter.
Qin Zilu, who was standing on the slide, was the first to see her uncle and aunt. She waved at them happily and shouted,Uncle and Aunt are finally here!
Her little voice was loud and clear, and everyone present heard it.
The empress dowager and empress dowagerughed. Zilu, you shouldnt call me aunt. You should call me aunt!
Everyone looked at Qin Zilu and listened to her answer.
But auntie is auntie, right?
Then if you dont change your address, youll have to call me uncle.
The Empress teased Qin Zilu on purpose.
But uncle is uncle. Why do you have to change your words?
Hahaha!!
At this moment, Sullo and Qin Shuang had already arrived in front of them. Qin Qingshuangs face turned red from embarrassment when she heard what they said.
MO Ruyue also thought of a problem. She should call Qin Qingshuang sister-inw instead, but she was also her biological sister-inw. Who should they call sister-inw?
This was really a difficult problem!
l dont care. I wont change my name. If you dont let me call you anything, were still family!
Were still calling him by his previous name!
MO Ruyue agreed with her daughter.
Not long after Qin Qingshuang married Su Luo, she felt that she was about to be a cripple. Because there were too many pce maids, everything was done immediately with just a nce and a move from her. She was just short of following Su Luo to the toilet to wipe her ass. It was also because Su Luo insisted on not following her.
After Su Luo left the court, although she had dismissed the pce maids, Su Luo had personally helped Qin Qingshuang with everything.
Su Luo could tell that Qin Qingshuang was a little unhappy.
Are you thinking of returning to your mothers house?
Qin Qingshuang nodded. She did miss her family. After marrying Su Luo, Su Luo treated her well and she lived a happy life, but she always felt at a loss.
Su Luo also realized that when she was in her maternal family, she was a carefree and happy little girl. She could do whatever she wanted and stay in the pce all day long. He definitely wouldnt let his little wife fight like the other emperors harem, but she was quite bored alone in the harem.
He had to deal with government affairs half the time every day. If there was a
big matter, he would have to spend the entire day on it, and he would have even less time to apany her. It would not be good if this continued.
Why dont you start a womens college like your sister?
Didnt you start a womens college?
What else can I do?
Then can you help me take care of it? I dont have time to take care of those things every day. I dont understand either. You have experience and youve also studied at a womens college, You should know what kind of process it is.
Also, can you help me manage the medical school?
Are you sure you want me to take care of it for you?
Qin Qingshuang was tempted. After all, those were the fields she was familiar with.
My entire body is yours. What else isnt yours? All of mine is yours. You can do whatever you want.
Qin Qingshuang hugged Su Luffs neck happily.
Hmm?
Brother Su, youre so nice!
Chapter 639 - 639: Giving Birth to a Child at the Age of Twenty
Chapter 639 - 639: Giving Birth to a Child at the Age of Twenty
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Only then did Sullo reveal a satisfied smile.
He didnt like Qin Qingshuang calling him Emperor. There were many people who called him Emperor. Everyone in the world called him Emperor, but his wife also called him that. He didnt like it and preferred to hear her call him Brother Su.
Qin Qingshuang had learned a lot from MO Ruyue. She was also proficient in management, so she managed the womens college and the medical college quite well. She was kind to people, but she would not let them off easily if they really made a mistake.
The empresss prestige was growing.
On this day, there was an eighteen-year-old girl in the medical school. She was reluctant to go home and get married when she finished her studies. In fact, she didnt want to go home and get married, but she was already old enough, and she married far away.
Qin Qingshuang couldnt help but think of the day she got married and felt the same way. This reminded him of his paternal family, but she couldnt be willful. She really wanted to go back.
It would take at least a month to go back and forth from Guanglu, and she still had to stay there for a while. It was really lonely to leave Big Brother Su alone in the pce, and her heart ached.
In the harem, other than the pce maids and eunuchs, there was no one else. If she hadnte, Big Brother Su would have been alone all day. No wonder the emperor called himself lonely.
Therefore, even if she wanted to go back to her mothers house, she had to endure it.
Su Luo returned to the harem after work that day and found that her wife was a little unhappy again. He could sense the slightest change in her expression.
Who made you angry again?
Who dares to provoke my Empress?
Who gave him the guts?
Someonee!
Su Luo asked a series of questions. She didnt even ask Qin Qingshuang to answer her. Instead, she called for someone to investigate what had happened today and made his wife so unhappy. She was simply despicable and audacious!
In an instant, two Eagle Guards came over and listened to Sullos instructions to quickly investigate.
Cant you listen to me first before you let people take action? Why did you ask them to investigate?
No one provoked me, it was me.
Su Luo was silent for a second.Why dont I bring you back to Xiliang in two
days?
Its not because of this.
Su Luo was anxious.
You said that as long as its something you want to do, Ill definitely do it for you.
Sigh, I really cant do anything to you. Actually, its nothing much. Theres a girl in medical school whos going to go home and get married when shes eighteen. Moreover, shes going to marry far away and will nevere back.
Isnt it easy for you to get her toe back? I can just get her whole family toe to the capital.
As Su Luo spoke, she wanted to send someone out to give the order, but she was stopped by Qin Qingshuang.
How could you do this? Was he willing toe? Are you going to give her a house to live in?
Who wouldnt be willing?
Isnt it a simple matter to give a house?
Then wouldnt it be more meaningful for you to make sure that there are no beggars staying on the streets in the Nortnd and no people starving to death?
Qin Qingshuang was also angry. Although he was the emperor, he could only do it with a word, but it would also bring a lot of inconvenience to others. For example, the girls inws had many rtives, friends, brothers and sisters. Even if they left, they would be like her. It would be difficult for them to go home. They could not put others in a dilemma because of their own selfish desires.
Besides, this wasnt how things should be handled. Alright, as long as you say it, I will definitely do it.
Then why are you angry? Can you tell me?
Qin Qingshuang felt that she had been too childish just now. Big Brother Su was already exhausted from handling the court affairs, yet he still had to spend effort to coax her when he came back. She felt that she had failed as a wife and was not worthy of being the mother of a country.
Brother Su, Im sorry. Im not in a good mood.
Silly wife, what are you talking about? Were husband and wife. Were husband and wife. If theres anything, we have to discuss it together. Theres nothing to be sorry about. Arent you hurting my heart by doing this?
Dont say sorry again in the future.
Qin Qingshuang nodded.
That girl doesnt want to get married, but thew says that it cant be vited.
Then when do you think you should get married?
Su Luo looked at Qin Qingshuang and said seriously.
If possible, the rule that women must marry when they are 18 years old should be changed to two years older.
Of course, if there were those who wanted to get married early, they could do so. If there were those who did not want to get married so early, they could stay until they were twenty years old. At this time, whether it was getting married or having children, it was the best for girls.
It was unintentional, but it was intentional. A few dayster, in front of all the civil and military officials in the court, Sullo really issued aw to change thew that women must marry at the age of 18.
From that day on, he would make sure that Qin Qingshuang would not get pregnant whenever he was intimate with her.
Didnt they say that it was safest for a woman to have a child at the age of 20 or above? Moreover, his wifes family had the hereditary trait of having multiple children. To him, the child belonged to him and Xiao Shuang, and he was looking forward to it very much. However, for the safety of having a child and his wife as soon as possible, he still chose to let his wife have another child two years older.
He only had this one wife, and she was also the person he loved the most. He could not bear to see her get hurt in the slightest.
Actually, it was fine if they didnt have children.
Su Luo even wanted her sister to adopt Qin Zilu.
If she said no, then she was the one who raised her daughter-inw. What if she said maybe?
Wife, let me tell you something. Ive been thinking about this for a long time.
Qin Qingshuang was very happy that Sullo had really changed the marriagew of the northern country to 20 years old. She had not expected her position in his heart to be so important!
She had been married for so long. As long as it was her, he would take it to heart. He was full of happiness and made up for the difort of leaving his family.
She had been in a good mood these few days.
As for the girl who was going to get married, she still went home to get married because the date had already been set and could not be changed. However, when the girl learned that the Empress had specially changed the relevantws because of her, she was very touched. She expressed that she and her husband would work hard in the future and woulde to the capital when they had time.
What is it? Just say it.
Quickly try on this inner garment to see if theres anything that doesnt fit.
Qin Qingshuang liked to make clothes, shoes, and socks for Su Luo when she had nothing to do.
Su Luo was also very happy to wear it. Other than the dragon robe, all the inner clothes were made by Qin Qingshuang. She said as she changed her clothes.
Wife, look, didnt you say that its safest for a woman to give birth at the age of 20?
Qin Qingshuang nodded and suddenly thought of something. Brother Su wouldnt let her wait until she was twenty to have another child, would he?
He could wait, but Big Brother Su couldnt. He was already thirty years old this year. How could he get married early? In a few years, he could be a grandfather.
Big Brother Su, I can take the world out!
Qin Qingshuang blushed.
Although she was already very close to Brother Su, she was still very embarrassed to talk about the child in front of him.
But I cant bear to.
I dont want you to be trapped in this pce because of me.
I said that if our Zilu was adopted and passed on the throne to her in a few years, I could bring you to tour the mountains and y with the water. We could go wherever we wanted and do whatever we wanted. Wouldnt that be beautiful?
The more Su Luo spoke, the more she felt that this was a good idea. However, the more Qin Qingshuang listened, the uglier her expression became..
Chapter 640 - 640: National Celebration
Chapter 640 - 640: National Celebration
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Youre Zilus biological uncle. You dont even want to be the emperor, but you let Zilu take over your position. Shes still a little girl.
I dont agree. If you want a child, well have one ourselves. Its not like I cant give birth to your child!
Even though it would take at least ten years for them to have a child and groom her into the next emperor, they couldnt let Zilu suffer just because of this. Not only did her brother and sister-inw disagree, but even she, as her aunt, couldnt bear to do so.
She had never seen the Imperial Pce or the Emperor before, so she didnt know what kind of life the Emperor was living. Now, she was just short of personally experiencing sitting on that dragon throne. This life was really not something that ordinary people could live.
Their Zilu was so cute, active, and yful. How could she sit still?
Dont make her anxious.
Su Luo saw that her wife was angry and quickly dismissed her thoughts.
.. Alright, alright. Wife, dont be angry. Its all my fault. 1 was just talking nonsense and joking with you.
Its not good for a womans health to be angry, so lets just let nature take its course. If youre pregnant, well give birth.
Then you have to keep exercising.
Qin Qingshuang nodded. She had waited for more than half a year, but her stomach still hadnt moved. She had seen a doctor, and the doctor had said that there was no problem.
Su Luo had also seen it. The imperial physician had also said that there was no problem and that they could give birth normally. However, the two of them had not been able to get pregnant for half a year. There must be something wrong.
One day, Qin Qingshuang, who had be more sensible, finally understood that she was a ghost from Sullo Ind. She was both touched and angry.
Su Luo was busy with government affairs all day long. Because of her words, she wanted the Nortnd to have no beggars, no people who starved to death, and no people who froze to death. She was so busy that her feet hit the back of her head.
There was nothing she could do. All she could do was try her best to take care of Brother Su l s health.
Every day, she would personally make soup for him, and it was all made ording to his favorite taste. The happiest thing for Su Luo when she returned to the harem was to be able to eat the soup that her wife personally fed him.
During this period of time, Su Luo had been rtively free, and she was in much better spirits. Qin Qingshuang mustered up her courage to do something that even she felt ashamed of.
She had seduced Su Luo.
Su Luo was in a daze the entire time. She couldnt believe that this was her little wife, and she was such an active little wife. She waspletely under her control. She did whatever her little wife said, and a monthter, Qin Qingshuang got pregnant.
Nio Ruyue and Gu Ying, who had received the news, rushed to the Nortnd with the five children. They brought a lot of things to nourish Qin
Qingshuangs body. There was only seafood in the Nortnd, and the other food was better in Xiliang.
Qin Qingshuangs stomach had not moved for the past half a year. MO Ruyue did not seem anxious, but she was.
She was very worried that her brother had not fully recovered from his illness.
MO Ruyue hade here once with her master to check her brothers pulse. The result was normal, but it was puzzling that they had never had a child. Now that there was finally news about Qin Qingshuangs pregnancy, everyone was very happy and finally put down the big rock in their hearts.
Since the Qin family had the genes for multiple pregnancy, everyone attached great importance to Qin Qingshuangs pregnancy. Moreover, she was the descendant of a country, and the child she gave birth to was not an ordinary child.
Thus, MO Ruyue decided to stay in the Nortnd until Qin Qingshuang gave birth.
Since the children were all grown up, the triplets and Qin Qingting could take care of them. They could also go to school here. Qin Qinghao did not take care of them. He said that he wanted to study hard.
He still remembered the promise he made when he was young. He wanted his mother to be the noblest mother in the world. Although his mother was now the princess of two countries and was already very noble, his son still wanted to give his mother a noble and enviable identity.
Therefore, Qin Qingting and the triplets were the only ones who went to the Nortnd this time.
Gu Ying handed over the house to Qin Qingyan, who had just gotten married two months ago. His wife was from Reliance Town. The girls family background was not very rich, but it was not bad. It was mainly because their family had a good character and was introduced by Yu Hongsheng. The two children met first and had a good impression of each other. Only then did the parents decide on their marriage.
After the two children got married, their rtionship was especially good. They did not have to worry about it. As for the mess at home, it was time for him to take care of it.
Gu Ying also came to the Nortnd with his wife.
Qin Qingyan looked at his heartless brother and had no choice. His new wife walked to his side and quietly held his hand. It was obvious that she would always be by his side and help him shoulder everything.
Qin Qingyans anger was instantly satisfied.
Those who had his wifes thoughts must have studied at a womens college
and knew a lot. They had helped Qin Qingyan a lot. For example, the womens college and other medical schools had to be managed by his wife and sister.
When they encountered problems rted to their studies, there would always be a teacher.
Every household in Xihe Vige had some errands to do. They were in charge of nting crops, herbs, flowers, fruit trees, bees, raising chickens and rabbits on the mountain, raising ducks, geese and fish at the foot of the mountain, managing inns, setting up stalls, and other small leaders. As Xihe Viges stalls grew bigger and bigger, they merged the neighboring viges and now became the most beautiful mountain vige.
The vige was already in an orderly state. If the stewards were unable to solve the problem, they would look for Wang Tiezhu and the others. They would just report to them once every seven days.
Therefore, MO Ruyue and Guying were very assured when they went to the Nortnd.
Under the meticulous care of MO Ruyue, Qin Qingshuang gave birth to a pair of twins one morning eight and a half monthster. The boy was the elder brother, and the girl was the younger sister.
Sullo danced happily and ordered the entire country to celebrate!
MO Ruyue was relieved. Her big brother finally had an heir.
Today was a sunny day. The spring light was bright and beautiful, and the birds were chirping and the flowers were fragrant.
In a valley at the border between the mountains of the Northern and Eastern Kingdoms, arge group of people was resting. Some were picking up firewood to start a fire, while others were washing pots and pans by the river, washing mushrooms and wild vegetables that had just been dug up from the forest.
Look what I hunted!
The few of them looked at the person who had juste out of the forest and saw that he was carrying a young roe deer. The roe deer had already died.
Aiya, its a roe deer. This roe deer meat is delicious. Were in luck today. Hurry up and peel off the skin and skewer the meat!
The condiments 1 brought are in the carriage. Big Brother, help me get them.
Im washing the vegetables.
Alright!
Su Luo agreed loudly. Qin Qingshuang had finished washing the dishes and ran over to help MO Ruyue wash the wild vegetables.
Thats right. This group of people was MO Ruyue and her husband, Qin Qingshuang and her husband, Xue Qing and her husband, Qin Qingfei and her husband, Qin Rouwan and her husband, and Ji Hong and his wife. The remaining dozen people were the two top kung fu experts each family had brought along.
Originally, they had wanted the twelve of them to go out and y by themselves, but the children at home did not agree. They had already walked far away, and these people had caught up with them.
The children said that they werent young. They were all in their forties, and Qin Rouwan and her husband were in their fifties. They wouldnt feel at ease if they didnt follow them.
Their children had all grown up. Some had married, some had married, and some had taken charge of the household. It was time for them to retire..
Chapter 641 - 641: You Can’t Fall Behind Even More After Retired!
Chapter 641 - 641: You Cant Fall Behind Even More After Retired!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The twelve of them decided to go to the other three countries to experience the culture and customs. At the same time, they wanted to see if there were any good things that their countries did not have that they could import to strengthen and develop their own countries.
Everyone was very interested in this five-nation trip. The reason why they were at the border between the Northern Kingdom and the Eastern Kingdom was because Ji Hong had never been here before. It was to let him and his wife take a look and make their trip to the Northern Kingdom a sess.
Their next stop was the Eastern Kingdom, then the Southern Kingdom, then the Central ins, and finally back to Xiliang.
The twelve of them were full of longing and yearning for this big trip. MO Ruyue had even given them a name for this trip: World Expedition Team!
Moreover, with so many of them together, they would not be alone along the way. With the protection of the top-notch experts sent by the children, their safety was also guaranteed.
However, their numbers were a big goal. In order to not attract attention, they were dressed very simply, dressed as vige women.
However, they looked to be in their thirties or forties, but the women were all beautiful women dressed in coarse cloth.
The man was slightly better. He felt that he had grown a beard because he was old. Only Su Luo did not grow a beard because he was already twelve years older than his wife. He was afraid that he would grow a beard like her father. Big Brother, your pretty face is not good. I have to put on makeup for you. You dont look like us.
Thats right. Youd better grow your beard.
Qin Qingshuang also nodded. Su Luo was a little reluctant and didnt dare to retort. After all, those two women were not people he could afford to offend.
They came out to y because they wanted to have fun and excitement. In the end, Su Luo decided that each of them would only bring 100 taels of silver, and this 100 taels of silver had to be spent before they could use it.
Usually, they could not spend money, so they had to rely on themselves to eat and drink. For example, when they were at the beach, they would go to the sea to pick up seafood.
When he was in the mountains, he would dig wild mushrooms and hunt. He would not go hungry at all.
If they wanted to eat rice, they could exchange some prey and other things with them when they passed by the vige. There was probably no farmer who would be unwilling.
Along the way, the twenty-four of them did not spend a single copper coin. Instead, they earned some money.
Today, they had hunted some prey. They wanted to eat the meat themselves. If they couldnt finish it, they would make it into jerky to eat on the road. After the skin was peeled, they could sell it when they reached the ce.
Of course, if they encountered good ones, such as high-quality tiger skin, they would keep them and send them back home for their grandchildren to use, He could also write a letter to tell them about the scenery, culture, and interesting things he had seen along the way. It would also let the children know that they were safe along the way and reduce their worries.
When the children received the gifts from their parents, they were touched and envious.
When can they retire?
However, they had just started, and they suddenly felt that the road ahead was far away.
Especially the fifteen-year-old emperor who had just ascended the throne. The day before, his father, mother, and aunt had just celebrated his fifteenth birthday. In the end, he was forced to ascend the throne the next day.
Su Luo and her husband had no choice but toe up with this n. It was definitely impossible to discuss it with their son, especially Su Luo. He felt that his son had learned everything he needed to learn and there was nothing he could not do. He could not dy his departure. He drafted the imperial edict in advance and instructed his father-inw and trusted ministers to wait for them to leave the capital before reading it. It was precisely because of these people helping his son that Su Luo dared to take his wife out to y
with ease. After all, she was his biological daughter, and she was given birth to by the woman he loved.
At first, Qin Qingshuangs heart ached for her son because he was too young. However, when Su Luo said that he had been taking every step carefully when he was three years old, she immediately dispelled her heartache for her son.
When the eunuch read out the imperial edict in front of all the civil and military officials, they were all shocked.
The little Emperor was already used to being hurt by his unscrupulous parents. He did not expect his father to once again refresh his understanding of him.
The dignified emperor was actually going to pass the throne to him in order to go out and y!
However, he could not refuse even if he wanted to, because his parents might have left the Nortnd at this moment. He did not know where they had gone.
Now, he had only received the local specialties and letters they had sent back along the way. The letters still did not mention where they had gone.
When they left, they only left a letter, saying that they had gone to find their aunt to go out and y, and that the return date was uncertain.
He wanted him to be the Emperor of the Nortnd and make bold decisions. If he couldnt make decisions, he would look for his cousins.
The little Emperor looked as if he had nothing to live for. He had started his enlightenment at the age of three, and at the age of six, he had been dragged by his father to listen to government affairs. Every day, he had to take time out to train his body and practice martial arts. Every day, he only slept for three and a half hours, six hours at night, and an hour at noon. This was because he was still growing.
If it wasnt for the fact that he wanted to grow up, his father would probably have forced him to sleep only four hours a day. Just like that, the entire day was filled to the brim. Now that he was fifteen years old, he had never rested a day and was spurred on by his father every day.
Now that he knew that his father had brought his mother out to y, although he was reluctant and envious, he also felt relieved at the same time.
Didnt Imperial Father say it in the letter? He was in charge of everything. Since he was in charge, he could do whatever he wanted!
Hehe! Just you wait! When youe back, Ill give you a daughter-inw and a grandson. Ill scare you to death!
He also wanted to groom a sessor early. Hmph, he would be able to retire in his early thirties!
She had lost to her cousins when she was bornte. She definitely could not fall behind by so much when she got married and had children!
He couldnt fall behind in retirement!
At the same time, she saw the letters left behind by her parents who had suddenly disappeared, as well as the children of the other five families.
Qin Zilu was now the Empress of Xi Liang. She looked at the letter the Emperor had given her. Then my parents, uncles, and aunts must have gone out too. Father and Mother couldnt have gone out alone. This idea must havee from my mother.
Its good to let them go out to y. Father has long wanted to go out. After being confined in the Pce for so many years, hes suffocated to death. Now, hes like a caged bird that has been released.
It could be seen that these children were very clear about their parents natures.
Then do you want to send someone to help Cousin? Cousin is only fifteen years old now. Uncle is really at ease, but Cousin is still very capable.
The new Emperor of Xi Liang was a little worried for the little Emperor of the Northern Kingdom. They had met a few times when they were young and had a good impression of each other.
Not now. Cousin has just be the emperor, and were taking the initiative to ask him if he needs help.
If cousin really cant hold on, hell definitely send a pigeon to ask for help if theres trouble.
Uncle must have had some people with him.
Oh right, Big Brother might not know about this yet. Tell him that youre leaving court tomorrow.
Qin Qinghao was now the youngest Prime Minister in Xiliang and even the five kingdoms. He was the top schr in high school at the age of sixteen and had be the Prime Minister in ten years. His mother, MO Ruyue, had the title of Eldest Princess and a top-grade imperial mandate..
Chapter 642 - 642: The Qin Family Specially Gives Birth to Twin Brothers
Chapter 642 - 642: The Qin Family Specially Gives Birth to Twin Brothers
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Qin Qinghao had really done it, making his mother the most respected woman in the world. However, because of his struggles, the marriage was dyed until three years ago. Now. his two younger brothers had children. and his child was only three years old.
As for MO Ruyues grandchildren who went out to y without taking care of them, it was all because the children felt sorry for her. They felt that she had brought up so many of them since they were young and did not want her to be so tired. Besides, their wives could take good care of their children, even though there were twins or triplets in several families and there was no shortage of servants at home. MO Ruyue was happy to be idle, and at most spent the day kissing her grandchildren.
MO Ruyue and her husband dared to go out to y in a big way because they were spoiled by the children.
ording to the children, when they were young, their mother spoiled them and raised them. Now, it was their turn to spoil their mother.
The Empress is right. Do as the Empress says.
You should still call me by my name. This empress is not used to hearing it and always thinks that you are calling her mother.
Qin ZilZilu interrupted the new emperor.
The new emperor had just ascended the throne, and she, the empress, was the same. She was still not used to being promoted to the empress.
Well listen to Sister Zilu. Sister Zilu, lets go to bed early and give birth to a sessor. In the future, well be like our parents and go wherever we want. If we give birthte, well be too old to walk when the child grows up.
Youre right.
The Qin family was also reading the letters left behind by MO Ruyue and Xue Chen.
Xue Chengen and Qin Chao found their uncle and showed him the letter.
Qin Qingyan, who was now in his thirties, had grown a goatee too. Actually, he had grown it too early, but as the dean of the Civil and Martial Arts Institute, he did not feel dignified.
Little Uncle, Little Brother and I went to see Father and Mother when we came back. We wanted to tell them the good news, but they secretly left without saying a word.
Just let them be. Now that they can finally stop, its good to take advantage of the fact that they can still walk and travel around.
Eldest Brother and Sister-inw have sacrificed too much for us in their lives. Its time for them to go out and have some fun. If theres anything,e and tell me. 1 wont refuse if 1 can do it.
Speaking of which, youre already in your twenties. You have a wife and a child, but you still cant leave your parents?
Qin Qingyan looked at his two nephews mockingly. They were only twelve years older than them, but they acted like they were much older.
Father and Mother should have brought us along. Tell me, how can we be at ease if theyre just outside?
When your parents ruled the world, you werent even born yet. Now, its not your turn to worry about them.
Dont worry, Ive sent two experts to follow them.
Besides, Eldest Brother and Sister-inw were only in their forties. They were still young.
They had been exercising every day and were in excellent health. Guying was also an expert, so Qin Qingyan was assured of their safety.
Xue Chengen and Qin Zichao were just a little unwilling to let their parents go out without them.
Even if your parents wanted to take you, they couldnt. Youve already sent your letters, right? Arent you going to a remote mountain vige to be a Zhizhou?
Do a good job and get that ce under control within three years. Transfer back as soon as possible. Otherwise, your big brother will break your legs.
Xue Chengen and Qin Zichao, who originally wanted to say something else, could only shrink their heads and go home to pack their luggage, preparing to go to a faraway ce to be a Zhizhou.
Other than their younger sister, the two brothers were most afraid of their eldest brother. Although their eldest brother had never been fierce to them, the two brothers had a sense of respect for their eldest brother for no reason.
The eldest brother was too capable. His entire body was shining. As the younger brothers, they could not be too much of a burden.
Otherwise, they would still be the young Princes in the Northern Kingdom. They insisted on relying on themselves in Xiliang just to prove to everyone.
Since they were young, everyone felt that if they didnt do anything, a pie would fall from the sky. In fact, they had also worked hard. In order to make those people forget about their title as the Regional King, the two brothers decided to do something big.
However, no matter what they did, they had to start from the bottom. The two of them entered the government with the identity of the king, but they did not lose face. Although they were not as good as their eldest brother, they still got the second ce and the flower.
Because the two brothers had already been given official titles, the new emperor would not let them start as county magistrates. In the end, they still benefited from it. The two brothers could only work harder than others to live up to what they had today.
Since the two children had already made this decision, how could the family not support it? They all pped their hands in agreement.
Father and Mother left without bringing me along. 1 dont know if its toote to find them now.
Qin Qingting, who was pregnant, looked at the letter left behind by Qin Rouwan and her husband. She beat her chest and stamped her feet, causing Qin Haoyu, who had been staring at his wife, to panic.
Wife, be careful. The child in our stomach is watching.
Thats right, Qin Qingting still married her childhood sweetheart, Qin Haoyu.
The Qin family was also willing to marry her when she swore to marry into the Qin family. Anyway, the Princesss manor and the Qin family were only separated by a Mingyue Mountain tunnel and two streets. It really did not matter who married who. As long as the two children liked each other and they were happy, it was fine.
In the end, Qin Qingting and Qin Haoyu would stay with the Qin family for a few days, and the Qin family would stay for a few days.
They didnt feel that they were missing a person, but that they had an extra person.
Qin Qingting looked at her big belly and was very annoyed. She gave Qin Haoyu a side nce.
Qin Haoyu, who had a strong desire to live, immediately raised his hand and swore,Wife, I promise that I wont give birth to another child. Four is enough.
In fact, Qin Qingting had insisted on giving birth to this child herself. However, she was pregnant now and was already angry. Therefore, Qin Haoyu understood the situation and took responsibility for everything.
When the children grow up, well go out and y. Well go wherever we want.
When the timees, leave the child at home.
Qin Qingting nodded. Lets go and tell Grandpa.
Dr. Qin was old and vigorous now. He had retired a long time ago, but he liked to take care of his two grandchildren.
She especially liked to take the children out for a walk and especially enjoyed the envious gazes of others.
Four generations of his family lived under the same roof, and his great-grandson was a pair of twins. Wasnt that enviable?
The Qin familys genes that produced twins were well-known in both Xi Liang and the North. The genes were so powerful that they spread like wildfire. When MO Ruyue, Qin Qingfei, Qin Qingshuang, and Qin Qingyan all gave birth to twins or twins, it had already caused a sensation in both countries. Now, MO Ruyues triplets also gave birth to triplets or twins, which was even more legendary.
Who wouldnt be envious? Who wouldnt be envious? For a moment, some families who had twins suddenly became really happy.
In the past, they didnt dare to marry into a family with twins because the daughter-inw who gave birth to twins was not particrly healthy. It was basically a situation of death.
Things were different now. The two countries in the northwest had very good solutions for women with difficultbor. There were also many gynecologists, and caesareans were well-known in the two countries..
Chapter 643 - 643: Good People Get Good Rewards
Chapter 643 - 643: Good People Get Good Rewards
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue and her group had just entered the Eastern Country when they came across a small vige that was about to enter the vige to exchange some rice and noodles with them. MO Ruyue delivered a pregnant woman who had a difficultbor, but she did not use a knife. After all, this was not their territory. If they were not careful, it would be troublesome if someone died.
Fortunately, after a night of hard work, the delivery was sessful. The family was extremely grateful to MO Ruyue.
Just as MO Ruyue and the others exchanged some rice and noodles with the vigers and were about to hurry on their way, they suddenly noticed that there were many rats, frogs, and earthworms running out of the vige.
Aiya, whats wrong with Sister-inw? So many earthworms and rats, so disgusting!
There were so many rats in the vige, did they not know?
As long as they were together with MO Ruyue, Qin Qingshuang and Qin Qingfei would subconsciously look for MO Ruyue if anything happened.
Not good. Im afraid theres going to be an earthquake. Quickly get the people in the vige toe out.
While MO Ruyue was guessing, a flock of birds suddenly flew over their heads, chirping and almost pulling their heads.
Hurry up and inform them!
As she spoke, MO Ruyue ran towards the vige. However, she was stopped by Gu Ying. With a nce from him, the twelve guards followed them and knocked on the doors of every house in the vige.
Some of the vigers believed it, while others did not. After all, they had lived in the vige for their entire lives and had never heard of any earthquake.
Just as they were in a stalemate, they suddenly felt the ground beneath their feet shake shake and the vigers panicked.
Come to the t ground!
Gu Ying used his internal strength to shout. Those people seemed to have a backbone and all ran towards the sound.
Two of the old roofs had copsed, and there was an old man with limited mobility in one of them.
Grandpa! My grandfather is still inside! Wuuuuu. Grandpa!
A six or seven-year-old girl cried and shouted, wanting to go back to the copsed house to save her grandfather.
Ying Yi took the girl away and Wei Yi rushed in to save her. Luckily, the old mans bed was at the corner of the wall. The roof had copsed and the beam supported him.
MO Ruyue and the others were looking at the mountain range in the distance. Two tall mountains had suddenly copsed.
It seemed that the source of the earthquake was there.
After a while, the earthquake stopped. The guards went to the intact houses to collect some things that could be used to set up tents. He asked the vigers to set up a tent on the open space first. After the earthquake passed, they could move back to their homes.
Benefactor, you saved our familys lives again. Good people will be rewarded.
You will definitely live to a hundred years old!
The family that MO Ruyue had delivered the child before knelt down in front of her and kowtowed to thank her. MO Ruyue quickly went forward to help them.
Dont stand on ceremony. Take good care of your wife first. Shes currently in a weak state.
Fortunately, the area returned to normal after two days. There were no aftershocks, and the main direction of the earthquake wasnt here. The only reason why this area was affected was because it was too close to the source of the earthquake.
MO Ruyue taught these people how to clean up the house and what to do if they encountered another earthquake. He also taught them how to prevent the gue. If there was an earthquake, there would definitely be a gue, but it was hard to say over there.
They wanted to go to the source of the earthquake. ording to the vigers, there was a town there.
When MO Ruyue and the others arrived at the source of the earthquake, they discovered that it was indeed a town. However, it had almostpletely copsed. There was a huge pit in the ground, and only a few rows of houses were still struggling at the edge of the pit. There were still many survivors in the ruins at the bottom of the pit.
MO Ruyue and the others saw some rational people struggling to climb to the shore. There were also people moving at the bottom of the pit, and some were crying. Without a word, they all went down to help save the people.
A few men were digging people out from the ruins of the Central ins. MO Ruyue and the other women helped to pull people up. Even the original two pairs of emperors and empresses were not idle.
One of you,e out and report the case to the county town. MO Ruyue said to the guards.
Call all the doctors in the county and ask them to bring medicine for external injuries.
Soon, a guard came out carrying two seriously injured people. He gently ced them on the ground and asked the people who were rescued for the direction of the county city. Then, he ran as fast as he could.
Because MO Ruyue and the others had arrived in time, they had saved the survivors.
Many of them died during the earthquake.
The people who were rescued, whether they were well or seriously injured, were all crying. The scene could no longer be described as tragic.
MO Ruyue, Qin Qingfei, and Qin Qingshuang were busy pacifying those people. They first treated their wounds briefly while a few guards ran to the distant forest to pick up dry wood to start a fire for these people.
The Eastern Kingdom was much colder than the Northern Kingdom. MO Ruyue realized that this ce was probably simr to the North Pole in the future. It was really very cold. Fortunately, it was also because of the extreme cold that the outbreak of the gue after the great disaster was greatly reduced. However, she still had to be on guard.
The guard who went to look for the county magistrate had already returned. Madam, the county magistrate and the others are behind.
Nio Ruyue nodded. Thank you for your hard work.
l should.
Soon, the county magistrate arrived with arge group of people. When he saw this scene, he was also stunned.
There was also a earthquake in the county town. They did not expect the disaster to be so serious.
The Magistrate had yet toe back to his senses when Red Moon began to give orders to the physicians who were holding medicinal herbs and medicine boxes.
The few people here are seriously injured and need immediate treatment. We have also treated the injuries of these people. These injured people need to be transferred to a safe ce immediately.
The county magistrate saw that he was supposed tomand the scene, but it was snatched away by others. He was a little unhappy. These people shouldnt be causing trouble at the side. What do they know?
Who are you? Why are you here?
From the way MO Ruyue and the others were dressed, it was obvious that they were not from the East.
Were just passing by. I dont know anything else, but I know that if you continue to dy like this, many peoples lives might end.
Magistrate and the others are good people. They saved us from the pit!
Yes, yes. If it werent for them, we would still be at the bottom of the pit. My master might not even be alive. Please save my master! l beg the county magistrate, please save my child!
Please save my parents!
The vigers who were still conscious and healthy all spoke up when they saw that the county magistrate was actually questioning their savior.
Since when had he ever been so idle? Moreover, other than this great fatigue, he was about to lose his ck gauze hat. These foreigners in front of him were good scapegoats.
The county magistrate ordered the dozens of bailiffs he had brought. Arrest those suspicious people first!
MO Ruyue and the others thought that they had misheard, but when they saw that the bailiffs were reallying towards them, they couldnt believe it. Was the county magistrate an idiot?!
The twelve guards immediately stood in front of their masters on guard. They were about to make a move when their masters gave the order.
Presumptuous! How dare you!
Su Luo was the first to stand up and berate him. It didnt matter if he was caught, but he couldnt let his wife and sister be caught by those people.
After all, they were the supreme beings. Their aura was not something that ordinary people could have. The county magistrate and the bailiffs did not know their true identities, but when they saw Sullos aura, no one dared to take another step forward..
Chapter 644 - 644: Immortal?
Chapter 644 - 644: Immortal?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Who exactly are you?
The county magistrate was also plotting in his heart. What if these people were either rich or noble, and he could not afford to offend them? However, judging from their clothes, they did not look like they were from a rich family. However, judging from their faces, they were not from an ordinary family, especially their aura. It was impossible for ordinary people to have it.
You dont have to care whether we aremoners or dignitaries. We saved these people, and many of them are still seriously injured and need to be treated.
Hurry up and save her!
There was one person among the injured who was about to rush out. The earthquake was caused by them, but it was their fault that the mortals suffered. These people hade to save them out of kindness, which was also the good fortune of themoners. He could not just watch MO Ruyue and the others being wronged. Seeing that the Magistrate was frightened by those people who had saved them, he sat back down.
The Magistrate was not sure who MO Ruyue and the others were. However, he could not remain indifferent as the vigers were watching them. In the end, he ordered the bailiffs to carry the injured to a safe ce and asked the doctors to hurry up and treat them.
At this moment, the sky suddenly started to drizzle. It was suddenly raining on such a cold day. These people had no ce to hide from the rain and could only be drenched. Fortunately, the rain was not too heavy. If it was a heavy rain, it would be even worse.
Sigh, my hand doesnt hurt anymore. My head doesnt hurt anymore, and I dont bleed anymore.
Sigh, me too.
Me too
Me too
More and more people said that the pain in their bodies was no longer painful. It was very strange. Suddenly, someone eximed.
l know, it must be the gods, it must be the gods!
This must be immortal rain, it must be immortal rain!
MO Ruyue and the others initially thought that these people were superstitious, but gradually, they began to unbutton their clothes, exposing their arms and legs. They raised their heads and opened their mouths to wee the drizzle that was falling from the sky, as if it was really some kind of immortal rain.
Hey, you guys cant do this.
This is Immortal Rain! Good-hearted people, its really the immortals who
havee to save us!
The kind-hearted person quickly opened his mouth and drank more. This was good for the body. It could cure all diseases and strengthen the body!
An old man with a broken leg bone, and it was MO Ruyue who fixed his leg for him. MO Ruyue stared at him with wide eyes as he got up on his own and could still move freely.
Gradually, more and more patients with heavy injuries could move, stand, or sit on their own as if nothing had happened. They also had the same behavior, which was to open their mouths to receive the rain.
For some reason, MO Ruyue also foolishly raised her head and opened her mouth to receive some rain. She pouted twice and felt the rainwater enter her mouth. It felt refreshing and refreshing.
MO Ruyue felt that it was impossible. She raised her head and opened her mouth to take another sip. She felt that the more she ate, the lighter and morefortable her body became.
All of you try.
She told Gu Ying, Qin Qingshuang, and the others that she hoped that she had been brainwashed by the vigers. Otherwise, how could she exin this?
Her family had seen her actions just now. Hearing her say this, they all did the same thing.
Its really amazing!
Solitary Shadow, Sullo, Ji Hong, and the others didnt feel wrong. The twelve guards also felt the same way. Xue Qing, Qin Qingfei, Qin Qingshuang, the Empress, and Qin Rouwan also felt that the rain had a miraculous effect.
Since everyone felt the same way, they would continue to ept it. This might really be something good that they could not miss.
What made them even more curious was that those who were originally seriously injured and feeling like they were about to die were now fine.
This really made MO Ruyue and the others dumbfounded. This was really magical. Could it really be the effect of the rain just now?
But then again, they had been saving people for most of the day and were very tired. After being drenched in the rain, they did not feel any difort. Instead, they felt quitefortable.
At this time, the vigers who were close to MO Ruyue and the others took the initiative to tell them about the legend of the Whitehead Mountain.
It was said that many, many years ago, there was a fight between an immortal and a demon here. The immortal was called Ruan Xin, and their vige still had her statue. Unfortunately, the earthquake had caused the entire vige to sink, and the vigers were drenched in the immortal rain today. They decided that when things stabilized in the future, they would build a bigger golden body for the immortal.
Speaking of which, that demon specialized in sucking human blood. Fortunately, the immortal won in the end and saved many people who had their blood sucked by the demon. At that time, he used this Immortal Rain Technique. The ancestors did not lie, they did not lie!
MO Ru Yue and the others were stunned by the mythical story. They did not believe it, but the magical rain did have a miraculous effect. If they believed it, it was too different from what they had originally known.
But no matter what, the result was good. These people were not fatal at the moment.
On the other hand, MO Ruyue was stunned when she heard the viger mention the fight between the immortal and the demon. The immortal that the viger mentioned was called Ruan Xin, which reminded her of his good friend, and also his only good friend, in the twenty-fifth century.
If the viger hadnt mentioned it, she would have forgotten the name Ruan Xin.
She and Ruan Xin grew up in the same welfare home, and their beds were next to each other. They were the best of friends, and they didnt get along well with anyone else. However, she was taken away by the organizationter, and when they grew up, they had a chance to secretly contact each other. The two of them treated each other as their closest people, but because she was an assassin, they only dared to secretly interact with her.
MO Ruyue recalled the time when she first transmigrated. Ruan Xin had just married the man she loved and went on their honeymoon honeymoon. When she was killed, she was d that Ruan Xin was not around. Otherwise, she would have cried.
However, she did not expect to hear this name again in this world. Could the person Miho was rumored to be an immortal be her good friend from the 20th century, Ruan Yin?
If that was the case, how did she survive?
Could it be that Ruan Xins boyfriend didnt treat her well after she died? Or did something happen to her?
And how did Ruan Xin be an immortal? No matter what, bing an immortal must be very powerful.
The fairy tale that the viger told her was from 21 years ago. If that person was really the Ruan Xin she knew, she should have transmigrated two years after she transmigrated.
She didnt know what she had experienced at that time. None of that was important. What was important was that if that immortal was really the Ruan Xin she knew, would they still have the chance to meet here?
MO Ruyues heart ached as she thought about this. She could not leave at all. Gu Ying and the others asked her, but she could not answer them.
He asked someone for a charcoal pen and drew a portrait of Ruan Xin based
on her appearance in his previous life. He wanted the vigers to see if the see Lile immortal they were talking about was this person.
The younger generation in the vige did not know what immortals looked like, but the older generation did. There was an old man in his seventies or eighties who had drunk the immortal rain back then. When he saw the portrait in MO Ruyues hand, he widened his eyes and nodded.Yes! Its too simr!
However, he did not know that his nod had caused MO Ruyues heart to beat so fast that she almost dropped the things in her hands.
There was no such thing as a coincidence in this world. That Ruan Xin must be the Ruan Xin she knew.. It must be!
Chapter 645 - 645: An Omnipotent Genius
Chapter 645 - 645: An Omnipotent Genius
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After that, MO Ruyue and the others were distracted during their trip. She was only thinking about finding Ruan Xin.
They had basically visited the entire Eastern Country, but MO Ruyue was still unwilling to leave.
When they were all asleep at night, Gu Ying finally couldnt help but ask MO Ruyue if she was hiding something.
If theres anything, you have to tell him. Dont hold it in.
Gu Ying thought that MO Ruyue would not say anything, but she did.
Actually, I know this Ruan Xin. We grew up together. Im a little worried about Ruan Xin. If that Ruan Xin is really her, how helpless would she be in this world alone?
Those vigers all said that she became an immortal and has powerful immortal techniques. She must be living better than us.
Actually, I think that if fate allows you to meet again, it means that your fate has ended. Isnt it enough to know that shes doing well?
MO Ruyue agreed with Gu Yings exnation.
MO Ruyue nodded.
However, she sent the portrait of Ruan Xin back to her home, so that the children would know, so that they would know each other. If she was not there in the future, the children would know each other when they saw each other.
Day after day, sixty years passed.
MO Ruyue was now almost ny years old. Her hair was white and she looked very old.
Many things had happened in the past sixty years.
Gu Ying had already passed away five years ago. Some of the children had also passed away. Some were old and sickly, with many grandchildren.
Grandma,e and y with me.
Madam, Grandma, look at Xinxin bullying me
Madam, Grandma
In the spacious courtyard, a five or six-year-old child was running around the courtyard. Hisughter was like copper bells, very pleasant to the ear.
MO Ruyue was lying on the rattan chair and basking in the sun. She felt much better when she saw the innocent smiles of these children.
In the past few years, watching his loved ones leave one by one was probably the most painful thing in the world.
It turned out that longevity was not a good thing.
The only pity was that she had never found a good friend, Ruan Xin.
She had been searching for her for sixty years and had heard a lot about her. She had even been seen in some of the Immortals, but she had never been found.
Ruan Xin, oh Ruan Xin, where are you? Did you really go to the immortal world?
MO Ruyue looked at the portrait of Ruan Xin in her hands and felt a myriad of emotions. After all, she had been looking for her for 60 years. She was already old and was about to die.
She was tired. She really wanted to rest.
She wanted to find her children and see Gu Ying
Not good, Old Madam has fainted.
Imperial physician, quickly go and call the imperial physician
In a daze, MO Ruyue felt her consciousness begin to separate from her body. Finally, she floated in the air and looked at the group of people who were in a mess. She smiled and calmly faced death.
However, in the next second.
A ray of white light shot up from below. MO Ruyue focused her eyes and saw that it was Ruan Xins portrait.
A white light shot out from the portrait and came before her. In the end, the
white light turned into a white-robed figure. It was Ruan Xin.
You You Ruan Xin?
MO Ruyue was shocked. Such a miraculous scene was simply a divine technique.
Xiaoyue, long time no see.
Ruan Xin smiled, looking extremely holy.
Where have you been all these years? It took me a long time to find you.
But now, I have no regrets to see you again before I die.
MO Ruyue walked over and hugged Ruan Xin.
Ruan Xin smiled. Actually, Im no longer in this world. Ive ascended to the upper world. This is just a clone of mine. When I became an immortal, my divine sense expanded infinitely and I identally discovered your soul. I knew that you had also transmigrated.
Unfortunately, the will of this continent has been suppressing my divine sense. I cant stay here for long, so I can only leave behind this divine sense in a hurry. Ill wait for you to wake up a hundred yearster and bring you to me.
What? Did you really be an immortal?
Although she knew the result, MO Ruyue was still a little surprised.
After all, they were immortals, carefree and immortal.
Although this venerable self has already be an immortal, the path of immortality is more difficult than you think, but there are also more benefits. This venerable self has set up all kinds of methods because you are a good sister.
Moreover, ording to the information I left behind, your husband, Gu Ying, is actually the incarnation of a mighty figure from another world. Now that his merits have been fulfilled, he has returned to the divine throne. What is it? Are you saying that Gu Ying is not dead?
MO Ruyue was so excited that Gu Ying didnt die. Did this mean that they would be able to meet again?
Ever since Gu Ying left, she had been living in a daze for the past few years. Without Gu Ying, her entire world had dimmed.
Hes dead, but hes not dead. It depends on how you interpret it.
Ruan Xins clone shook his head and said,Alright, this avatar of mine doesnt have much energy. It will take a lot of effort to send you to the Upper Realm.
Are you ready?
MO Ruyue nodded.
Boom!
In an instant, Ruan Xins clone exploded and turned into white light. The entire world turned white and a door appeared in the void.
That must be the gate to the Upper Realm. Hurry up, I cant hold on for long!
Oh, oh
MO Ruyue stepped through the door. Suddenly, she thought of something and shouted,Ruan Xin, how can I find you?
Everything is up to fate. Im here
The white light disappeared, and the world fell silent.
It was as if nothing had happened.
The wind blew the grass, and the sun was warm.
This was the Demon Realm.
Why did you ask to meet me at noon? Dont you know that this is very dangerous?
The man was dressed in a spotless white robe and looked handsome.
On the other hand, the woman opposite him had a graceful figure and was extremely charming. The only w was that she had a hideous scar on her face, which was extremely ugly.
Because something will happen sooner orter.
Nio Ruyue said faintly.
Then, MO Ruyue crossed her arms and asked with a serious can I go back? I cant hide anymore. They want me to kill.
Wait a little longer. Ill inform you if theres any news. Also, dont look for me unless its important.
The man frowned slightly and replied perfunctorily with a hint of impatience.
But we agreed to be undercover for three months. Its been two years now.
You know how Ive been these two years.
MO Ruyues tone was agitated. She felt that she had been forgotten by the immortal sects.
In the past two years, she had done a lot of things for the immortal sect. Why was she so unimportant?
Eldest Senior Brother, tell Master that I want to go back. My identity as a spy is about to be exposed. The people of the Demon Realm are very vignt. In order to leave the Devil World, MO Ruyue softened her tone.
Junior Sister, Master is still in seclusion. Im afraid Master cant hear you. Eldest Brother smiled casually.
Then when Masteres out of seclusion, tell him to let me go back.
MO Ruyue looked at her Eldest Senior Brother eagerly. She had pinned all her hopes on him.
Eldest Brother pretended to be in a difficult position. After hesitating for a long time, he about this? I heard that the Demon Realm is looking for the Heaven-cleaving Sword. If you can get the Heaven-cleaving Sword and give it to me, Ill help you pass a message to Master.
MO Ruyue was a little disappointed. She pretended to reply, Alright, I promise
you.
How could the Heaven-cleaving Sword be so easy to obtain? Did he really think that she was an omnipotent genius?
She was a little disheartened.
Junior Sister, be good. Ill be waiting for your good news.
With that, the man disappeared into thin air.
Since you guys are heartless, dont me me for being unjust
A cold glint shed across MO Ruyues eyes as she spoke in a distant tone..
Chapter 646 - 646: A Demon Art That Cannot Be Revealed
Chapter 646 - 646: A Demon Art That Cannot Be Revealed
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After transmigrating to this world, she had been undercover in the demon world for two years.
She had originally followed the guidance that Ruan Xin had left behind and her soul hade to this world. Her original body was originally an immortal sect disciple, but because an ident had happened outside, she had benefited.
MO Ruyue had originally nned to hide in the Immortal Gate and slowly inquire about Ruan Xins whereabouts. However, she did not expect that her original master would send her to the Devil World without a word and be a spy in the Immortal Gate.
These days in the demon world, she was like walking on thin ice. If she was not careful, she might lose her life.
The immortal sect and the devil realm had always been at odds. They had fought many times, and she did not know what to do. She was stuck in the middle.
They could not kill the people of the immortal sect, nor could they kill the disciples of the demon world.
The immortal sect ignored her and didnt want her to go back.
Right now, she was like a chess piece thrown away by the immortal sect.
At this moment, a ding sounded.
[Detected that the host is in the immortal world. The danger level is high. The portable space is scanning]
[Scanning, upgrading]
[Ding! Portable Space upgradepleted. Salted Fish Reversal System activated. Reward: 1 Face Rejuvenating Pill]
MO Ruyue was blindfolded.
This space could be upgraded?
After a while, she checked the system introduction and felt much more rxed.
MO Ruyue took the Rejuvenating Pill and examined it for a moment before swallowing it into her stomach.
For a moment, he did not feel anything.
Was the system joking?
At this moment, a voice rang out. MO Ruyue, what are you doing here? Are
you a spy trom tne Immortal sect
The man was dressed in a ck suit. He had sword-like eyebrows and starry eyes. His lips were red and his teeth were white. He was slender and had a jade pendant hanging on his waist. He gave off an overbearing aura.
At this moment, he was sizing up MO Ruyue.
His eyes were filled with suspicion.
It was MO Ruyues sworn enemy in the Devil World, her sixth Senior Brother, Qi Shaoyu.
In MO Ruyues eyes, her senior brother in the Devil World was as f * cked up as her senior brother in the immortal sect.
She was ranked seventh in the immortal sect and seventh in the demon world.
Although there were so many senior brothers, not many of them remembered her. Those who remembered her were just her sworn enemies.
It should be mentioned here that MO Ruyue was a disciple of an immortal sect. In the Devil World, she was not a disciple, She was only ranked ording to her status. She happened to be ranked seventh, and she was only called Senior Brother.
She had never seen the Demon Lord before, so she didnt have the chance to see him with her own eyes.
The Demon Venerable was in seclusion, and the matters of the Demon Realm were all handled by Eldest Senior Brother.
Eldest Senior Brother was the Demon Lords most trusted assistant and also the number one guardian of the Demon World.
Hearing Qi Shaoyu say this, MO Ruyue felt a little unnatural, but she quickly regained her senses and said coldly,Sixth Senior Brother, please dont speak nonsense.
Then what are you doing alone in Mount Sunsea? Dont tell me youre here to admire the scenery.
Qi Shaoyu inched closer to MO Ruyue, his eyes full of mockery.
MO Ruyue had long been an eyesore to him. She was just a good-for-nothing. It had been a few years, but her cultivation had not shown any signs of improvement. She was only slightly stronger than those small fries.
The most important thing was that MO Ruyue was too ugly. Just looking at her face made him lose his appetite.
What does mying here have to do with Sixth Senior Brother? Cant I be happy to be here?
MO Ruyue snapped. Qi Shaoyu did not like her, and she did not like Qi Shaoyu either.
The Demon Realm Saintess Selection was officially held.
There were thirty contestants, and all of them were one in ten thousand good-looking.
Each had their own characteristics.
MO Ruyues mask made her seem out of ce, and many people were discussing her in private.
Everyone looked puzzled as they watched MO Ruyue participate in thepetition.
MO Ruyue, why are you joining the selection?
Qi Shaoyu asked loudly. MO Ruyue might not be able to pass the first round. Wasnt this asking for a beating?
As the referee, MO Chengfeng signaled Qi Hengyu to be quiet. He was the one who agreed to let MO Ruyue participate in thepetition.
MO Ruyue only nced at Qi Shaoyu. This guy really cared too much.
In the past, in order to hide her identity as a spy, she had always been subservient and often did things that went against her will.
Now that she could not return to Xuanling Immortal Sect, she would join the Demon World and no longer need topromise.
Qi Shaoyu sat down, his expression a little ugly.
What right does MO Ruyue have to participate in thepetition? Senior Brother MO was too much. Wasnt he afraid that the Demon Venerable would be frightened by MO Ruyues appearance?
He crossed his arms in front of his chest, looking angry.
A senior brother nced at the angry Qi Shaoyu and said,Junior Sister, if you want to participate, then so be it. Why are you so excited?
She was so excited that it was a little abnormal.
Qi Hengyu snorted and did not say anything.
The first test was on the face and figure. The figure did not need to be very good, but it had to be well-proportioned. It could not be too fat or too thin.
The face did not need to be beautiful, but the facial features had to be straight, without scars or defects.
Shen Yunyan was very confident in her figure and looks. Among so many women, she was considered to be one of the more outstanding ones.
Her face was pure and harmless, like a little girl who had not experienced the world.
He nced sideways at MO Ruyue and said coldly, Why are you still wearing a mask? Wearing a mask could not allow one to participate in the Saintess Selection.
The other women were also curious about MO Ruyue.
Many people knew that MO Ruyue was ugly with scars on her face.
How could she run for the position of Saintess like this?
He wondered where MO Ruyue got the courage to participate in the Saintess Selection.
Why dont you take a good piss and take a look at yourself?
MO Ruyue took off her mask. The next second, the entire ce fell silent.
All of them stared at MO Ruyue in shock.
MO Ruyue didnt have any ugly scars on her face, and her skin was as fair as snow, with a hint of peach blossom pink.
Her face was like a peach blossom, probably like this.
Her phoenix-like eyes were cold and the corners of her eyes were slightly raised.
MO Ruyues eyes were originally beautiful, but because of the previous scar, everyone had neglected her beautiful eyes.
Now that there was no scar, he discovered that those eyes were so beautiful.
MO Chengfengs eyes turned cold as he gripped the fan in his hand tightly. His expression was strange.
Qi Hengyu was also stunned. When did the scar on her face heal?
She could not believe her eyes. She stood on the stage, facing the wind, like a crane among a flock of chickens among the thirty women.
Those who had mocked MO Ruyue for being ugly all shut their mouths.
How did this happen? Wheres your scar?
Shen Yunyan wanted to see MO Ruyue make a fool of herself in public, but MO Ruyue did not make a fool of herself in public. Instead, she stunned everyone!
This was not the result she wanted to see.
The other women in thepetition looked at MO Ruyues cold and outstanding face and could not help but feel a sense of crisis.
My scar is healed. Its not a birthmark. Its just a scar. Its easy to deal with! MO Ruyue said matter-of-factly.
She didnt use any medicine to remove the scar. The system only gave her a Face Rejuvenation Pill.
The small ws on his face and body were gone, making everything more perfect.
Her skin was even fairer, more delicate, and smooth. It was not an exaggeration to say that it could be broken by a single blow. How could it be so easy? You must have used some secret sorcery. Looking at MO Ruyues expression, Shen Yunyan felt pressured.
If he continued to be ugly, wouldnt it be better to live with a mask?
She had to take off her mask and take everything that belonged to her!
Chapter 647 - 647: Courting Death
Chapter 647 - 647: Courting Death
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes at Shen Yunyan and said with a smile,So what if I used unspeakable yao arts? Did I vite thews of the mo territories?
Then, she looked up at MO Chengfeng, who was seated at the referees seat.
Senior Brother MO, can I pass the test like this?
MO Chengfeng looked at MO Ruyues face. She was indeed qualified to pass the test now.
Could it be that Ruyue really wanted to be the Saintess?
Sure.
MO Chengfeng pursed his lips and gave a fair answer.
Although he did not wish for Ruyue to be the Holy Maiden, he could not go against fairness in front of so many people.
[SalSalted Fish System: Please take the position of Saintess.]
MO Ruyues mouth twitched as she looked at the quest that the System had given her.
This system was reallyzy.
Other systems would give missions for the host toplete, but her system was doing this on its own, and this matter had actually be its ovvn mission.
It felt like taking off his pants and farting, like Diao Chans purification at the beginning of the game.
It was unnecessary.
However, this was still good for MO Ruyue. She would get a reward after the event.
Almost all of them passed the first round. Everyones qualifications were not bad. There was no one who was too fat or too thin. Their facial features were not straight, and there were naturally no ws on their bodies.
In the second round, everyone performed a talent. They sang, danced, danced with swords, and yed music.
MO Ruvue felt that this wasnt like the Saintess Selection Competition, but more like apetition to form a girl group. Do I need to sing to be a saintess?
MO Ruyue was doubtful.
The others scrambled to perform their unique skills. Their melodious voices, charming dance, unrestrained sword dance, and wonderful ying
Shen Yunyan had specially changed into a set of rainbow-colored feathers and put on beautiful makeup. It was very grand.
Seeing Shen Yunyan on the stage, the young people below the stage started to cheer.
Little Junior Sister is so beautiful. Little Junior Sister, you can do it. We all believe in you.
Shen Yunyan, you are the best.
The voices of praise and encouragement were endless. Those people wanted to run up to the stage to cheer for Shen Yunyan.
Shen Yunyan enjoyed the feeling of being pursued. It made her feel her value.
So many people liked her, and the demon lord would definitely like her.
She thought happily in her heart.
The Infernal Queens position was definitely hers.
MO Ruyue yawned as she watched this scene from below the stage.
Soon, Shen Yunyans dance began, and she looked quite good.
Shen Yunyan must have learned dancing before. To Nio Ruyue, who had never learned professional dancing before, Shen Yunyan was indeed better than her.
Therefore, she could not go up and dance again. Dancing was her weakness. At most, she could only shake her hands.
MO Ruyue, wheres the scar on your face?
Qi Shaoyu asked. This woman was extraordinarily good-looking.
This womans eyebrows were like a painting, and her skin was delicate and fair.
In the past, he had only seen the scar on this womans face, but not the other parts of her face.
None of your business!
MO Ruyue was toozy to bother with him because Shen Yunyan had already finished her performance. She was next. MO Ruyue, what kind of talent are you performing?
MO Chengfeng said loudly on the stage. Shattering a boulder in the chest! MO Ruyue tilted her head and said.
Pfft
Hahaha What a talent!
Everyone burst outughing when they heard that.
However, despite herughter, MO Ruyue still passed the second round of thepetition.
Soon, the game began.
The women who had entered thepetition were all standing on the stage, listening to MO Chengfeng speak.
The third round of thepetition will begin. Everyone will have a piece of paper with the name of the item on it. You need to find the item on the list in the Tranquil Dream Forest within a specified time. Whoever finds the most items will win.
When MO Chengfeng mentioned the Tranquil Dream Forest, everyone was a little surprised.
Usually, they werent in the Tranquil Dream Forest. Why did they need to go to the Tranquil Dream Forest this time?
The Tranquil Dream Forest was not an ordinary dangerous ce. There were all kinds of demons and monsters inside. If they were not careful, they might die there.
Seeing that everyone was puzzled, MO Chengfeng exined,The original Dream Valley didnt have any useful spirit herbs and spirit fruits, so we changed the location at thest minute. If youre afraid, you can give up now.
There were more than 20 women, and many of them had already revealed fear when they heard about the Tranquil Dream Forest.
Although she really wanted to be a goddess and get close to the demon lord, it was not worth sacrificing her life to be a saintess.
They had thought that they were going to the Dream Valley, as they had already prepared their strategy.
However, they never expected that they would be asked to go to the Tranquil Dream Forest.
l, Im withdrawing from thepetition!
With the first person withdrawing, more and more people withdrew.
In the end, there were only ten people left.
These ten people included MO Ruyue.
Shen Yunyan did not withdraw from thepetition. MO Ruyue did not withdraw from thepetition, so naturally, she could not withdraw from thepetition.
Moreover, she had to get close to the Demon Lord and gain his trust.
MO Chengfeng looked at the ten women who remained before him and nodded his head in satisfaction. He admire your courage. I hope you can achieve good results.
His gaze fell on MO Ruyue. It seemed that Ruyue was serious about participating in thispetition.
Then, MO Chengfeng opened the portal and said,Three dayster, you must return safely.
Senior Brother MO, dont worry. I will definitely return safely in three days. Shen Yunyan smiled confidently.
Originally, there were more than 20petitors. Now, there were less than 10 of them. Her chances of bing a Saintess were even greater.
Not long after MO Ruyue and the others left, Qi Shaoyu came to MO Chengfengs side.
Senior Brother MO, I heard that you were the one who allowed Ruyue to participate in the Saintess Selection. Why? The demon was temperamental, and Ruyue would be in danger if she stayed by his side.
Qi Shaoyu asked with a serious expression.
MO Chengfeng turned around and looked at Qi Shaoyu, who was in a strange mood. Why are you suddenly so concerned about Ruyue?
l, when did I care about her? I just feel that her strength is too low. Going to the Serene Gate Forest is equivalent to sending herself to her death.
Qi Shaoyu turned his head and refused to admit it.
If this isnt called caring, then what is?
Did Qi Shaoyu think that he was stupid and couldnt tell?
Im a little confused. Your rtionship with Junior Sister Ruyue was like lightning striking fire. Why did it change now?
MO Chengfeng frowned slightly.
He felt that things were not as simple as they seemed.
Qi Shaoyu didnt respond, so MO Chengfeng didnt continue to ask. He rified, I originally only asked Ruyue to make up the numbers and she was eliminated in the first round. But you saw the result yourself. I also gave her a chance today, but she insisted onpeting without hesitation He really couldnt be med for this.
He did not know why Ruyue, who was initially not interested in thepetition, suddenly became interested in it.
What exactly happened?
Qi Shaoyu looked at the portal and returned to his seat.
Nio Chengfeng lowered his eyes, unable to understand the rtionship between Qi Shaoyu and Ruyue. Tranquil Dream Forest
MO Ruyue and the nine contestants appeared in the same ce, surrounded by towering trees.
That seems to be the Fire Ginseng Fruit. I saw it first.
A woman cried out in surprise and quickly went to pick the Fire Ginseng Fruit she saw.
When the others saw this, they quickly went up to snatch the fire ginseng fruit.
It had only just begun, but the scene had already be a mess..
Chapter 648 - 648: Taking the Antidote in Advance
Chapter 648 - 648: Taking the Antidote in Advance
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Nio Ruyue was stunned.
Of course, there were also some who did not go over to fight for it like her.
There were a pair of twin sisters, Shen Yunyan, and another cold woman in ck.
The twins elder sister was Fengxue, and their younger sister was Pineapple.
The cold woman in ck was called Leng Qiangwei.
These peoples names were all so unique.
Sister, lets go together. Pineapple looked disdainfully at the women who were snatching the Fire Ginseng Fruit.
How was she any different from a mad dog if she still wanted to be a saintess?
Such a woman standing by the side of the Demon Lord would embarrass him!
She looked down on such women the most.
Alright, lets do it together. We must obtain the position of Saintess. Sisters working together can cut through metal!.
Feng Xue was full of confidence. She teamed up with her sister and walked into the depths of the forest.
If he searched ording to the items on the list, he would definitely be able to find them all in three days.
Leng Qiangwei left alone and disappeared into the forest.
Shen Yunyan scoffed at the two sisters words and spat in her heart.
Dream of an idiot!
He turned his head and nced at MO Ruyue, plotting something in his heart.
How about it? Do you want to work together?
They would cooperate first, and then think of a way to deal with MO Ruyue.
There were two positions for Saintess, but she didnt want MO Ruyue to be the Saintess.
Especially now that MO Ruyue was prettier than her, even though she was so ugly before.
MO Ruyue thought she had misheard Shen Yunyan. Shen Yunyan hated her so much, yet she still wanted to work with her? How strong must one be to say such words?
Why cooperate?
Wouldnt it be faster for two people to search for something? Moreover, this ce was filled with danger. It would be good for the two of them to take care of each other, right?
Shen Yunyan felt that her words were clear and logical. This was beneficial to the two of them.
MO Ruyue had no reason to disagree.
MO Ruyue listened to Shen Yunyans words and sneered. Youre really thinking about it. I refuse what you said. You should find someone else to work with. I dont like you being with me. I dont feelfortable being with you. For my own physiological reaction, Ill go my own way.
She rejected Shen Yunyan very straightforwardly. There was no one else here, so she said whatever she wanted. There was no need to hide herself.
Xia Zhixing and Qi Shaoyu doted on her, but that didnt mean she had to dote on this woman.
Usually, in order to avoid trouble, he pretended that he could not afford to offend Shen Yunyan. After all, she was a spy from an immortal sect.
If they really investigated her, she would be finished. She would definitely be exposed.
Therefore, MO Ruyue would endure it as much as she could.
But now, she had thought it through. She no longer worked for the immortal sect and wanted to have a foothold in the Demon Realm.
Nio Ruyue moved alone in the Tranquil Dream Forest to look for the items on the list.
Fire Ginseng Fruit, Spirit Flower Leaf, White Spirit Fragrance, Red Tail Root, Xiang Rong Flower, Acacia Grass
Counting them, there were about twenty to thirty items. These items could be used to make magic pills and spirit pills.
These things were not cheap in the market.
These things were definitely not that easy to find.
After walking for a long time, MO Ruyue finally found the Yearning Grass at the bottom of a cliff. Just as she was about to go and get it, she noticed a cobra staring at her menacingly.
Its troublesome.
She muttered and drew her sword.
Ordinary venomous snakes were rtively easy to deal with.
As soon as the poisonous snake was driven away, a figure appeared. Shen Yunyan pulled out the Yearning Grass.
Shen Yunyan, I saw it first.
MO Ruyue said coldly. She did not expect Shen Yunyan to appear here.
Shen Yunyan put the Yearning Grass into her basket and smiled proudly. I got it first.
Hearing Shen Yunyans words, MO Ruyue did not fly into a rage out of humiliation.
Alright, you got it first.
After saying that, MO Ruyue turned around and left.
Ming Sihan thought that MO Ruyue would teach Shen Yunyan a lesson, but he didnt expect her to be so scared at the critical moment.
He did not need a weak Saintess by his side.
He was a little disappointed with MO Ruyues performance.
Looking at MO Ruyues back view, Shen Yunyan continued to follow her, her eyes shing with a hint of sess.
MO Ruyue was like a paper tiger. She only knew how to shoot her mouth off and would nevery her hands on her.
Even if they fought, MO Ruyue might not be his match.
She loved snatching things from MO Ruyues hands. She wanted to see MO Ruyues exasperated face.
Thus, Shen Yunyan followed behind MO Ruyue,
In the following period of time, Shen Yunyan snatched a few more items that MO Ruyue had discovered. The process was quite smooth.
MO Ruyue didnt lose her temper, which further proved that MO Ruyue was a paper tiger.
Therefore, Shen Yunyan became even more courageous.
Ming Sihan couldnt stand it anymore. Would this MO Ruyue resist? He had been bullied!
As a member of the Demon Realm, how could he tolerate being stepped on
and bullied?
After a day, MO Ruyue didnt encounter any special danger. On the wvay, she met anotherpetitor, Liu Xianghe. At this time, Liu Xianghe had already found more than ten items.
l didnt expect it to be the two of you. How many things did the two of you find?
Liu Xianghe asked curiously as she looked at MO Ruyue and Shen Yunyan from head to toe.
However, she soon realized that there was nothing on MO Ruyues body, but Shen Yunyan had quite a lot on her.
She seemed to have understood something. Shen Yunyan must have taken everything from MO Ruyue.
Otherwise, how could MO Ruyue not have any items when they were together?
MO Ruyue nced at Shen Yunyan as if she was hinting at something.
I dont have much time, how much time do you have?
Shen Yunyan raised her eyebrows and asked.
She didnt expect Liu Xianghe to find so many items, even more than what she had on her.
Of course I dont have much. Its dark now, so Ill continue searching tomorrow morning.
Liu Xianghe did not show the things to Shen Yunyan and MO Ruyue.
He was afraid that the two of them would be jealous when they saw his items.
They were herpetitors now.
However, she did not deliberately hide it from Shen Yunyan and MO Ruyue. She wanted them to know how powerful she was.
Only she had the qualifications to be the Saintess.
The three of them spent the night in a cave. Shen Yunyan kept an eye on Liu Xianghes belongings from time to time. It was the easiest and most direct way to take things from others. It saved time and effort.
He didnt know how long it would take to find all the items in the Tranquil Dream Forest.
Seeing that Liu Xianghe had something on her that she had not found yet, Shen Yunyan had an idea.
MO Ruyue had almost seen through Shen Yunyans thoughts, but she did not remind Liu Xianghe.
In the middle of the night, Shen Yunyan sneakily took away Liu Xianghes belongings and left the cave.
Nio Ruyue immediately opened her eyes and followed him out.
At this moment. there was only aver of blurry light outside.
Where are you going?
A voice rang out, filled with indifference.
Nio Ruyue finally caught up to Shen Yunyan. She fell from the tree and blocked Shen Yunyans path.
Why are you awake? She had clearly put a sleeping incense in the cave, so MO Ruyue should have been knocked out like Liu Xianghe.
MO Ruyue smiled. Im the same as you. I took the antidote in advance.
Shen Yunyans eyes kept looking at Liu Xianghe. She already knew what this woman wanted to do..
Chapter 649 - 649: Humiliation
Chapter 649 - 649: Humiliation
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
What do you want to do?
Shen Yunyan questioned coldly.
Seeing MO Ruyue approaching, Shen Yunyan had an ominous feeling and quickly drew her sword to defend herself.
Then, he quickly protected the basket on his body.
Of course, it is to treat others with their own Tao.
MO Ruyue said faintly.
It was time for her to fight back.
He had nned to attack Shen Yunyan on the day he left, but now that Shen Yunyan had almost all her belongings, it would be toote if he didnt make a move.
He would make a move when he needed to.
Shen Yunyan pointed her sword at MO Ruyue and said sternly, Donte over! Come over and Ill kill you.
Sorry, 1 have to get close to you so that I can get the thing on you.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Shen Yunyan turned around and ran away in fear.
At this moment, MO Ruyue looked like a demon that had juste out of hell. She was dressed in a ck robe and was in the darkness. There was a strange smile on her face.
A rumbling sound rang out as a bolt of lightning struck down, directly striking Shen Yun Yan into the air.
Shen Yunyan was instantly struck until smoke came out of her mouth, and her body fell straight to the ground.
His entire body could not help but twitch.
It was like this again!
Ming Sihan raised his head and looked at the woman beside him, feeling a little confused.
What happened to the lightning just now? Did it have anything to do with MO Ruyue?
It seemed to be rted, but it also seemed to be unrted.
He thought that this woman was weak and ipetent, but to his surprise, this woman actually yed a game of chess.
Sometimes, resourcefulness was more important than strength.
MO Ru Yue came to Shen Yunyans side and took the items from her without hesitation.
As expected, taking it from someone else seems to give me a greater sense of aplishment!
No wonder Shen Yunyan liked doing this so much.
It was indeed interesting.
Afterparing the items with the items on the list, there were only two items left.
She lowered her head and looked at Shen Yunyan. She had burned Shen Yunyans list of items.
This is retribution!
After doing all this, Nio Ruyue turned around and left, hoping that Shen Yunyan would remember what she was looking for.
Otherwise, this fellow would think of a way to snatch it from others. Anyway, wasnt her method quite powerful?
When Shen Yunyan woke up, she realized that all her things had been stolen. Even the list of items had been burned. She shouted MO Ruyues name in anger.
MO Ruyue, you damned woman. Dont let me catch you, or Ill make you pay! This voice drew Liu Xianghe over. She wished she could kill Shen Yunyan.
When she woke up, she realized that all her belongings were gone, and Shen Yunyan and MO Ruyue were nowhere to be seen.
She knew that it must be Shen Yunyans doing.
When she saw Shen Yunyan, she immediately stabbed Shen Yunyan.
The two of them were locked in a fierce battle.
Both of them were equally strong.
Liu Xianghe, 1 didnt take your things.
Shen Yunyan exined loudly. This woman was like a lunatic. Every move she made was fatal.
If she was any weaker, Liu Xianghe would have killed her.
She should let her deal with MO Ruyue since MO Ruyue had everything with her anyway.
If you didnt take my things, then who took my things?
At this moment, Liu Xianghes eyes were red with anger.
The sword in his hand and Shen Yunyans sword met, and the two of them red at each other.
Look, I dont have anything on me. My things were all stolen by MO Ruyue. Shen Yunyan said coldly.
Then, Shen Yunyan continued, Not only did she steal my things, but she also burned my inventory.
After listening to Shen Yunyans exnation, Liu Xianghe retracted her hand.
Shouldnt you be in the cave? Why are you here?
Liu Xianghe stared at Shen Yunyan suspiciously. She did not fully believe Shen Yunyans words.
Shen Yunyan argued, When I woke up, 1 realized that all my things were gone, so I ran out to look for MO Ruyue. Not only did she take my things, but she also took your things. What a wicked and cunning woman!
Where is MO Ruyue now?
In the end, Liu Xianghe chose to believe Shen Yunyans words because Shen
Yunyan did not have anything on her.
MO Ruyue had disappeared. That thing must be with her.
I wish I knew. Now, we can only go to MO Ruyue and ask her to hand over the item.
Thats the only way.
Thus, the two of them began to search for MO Ruyue in the Tranquil Dream Forest.
At this moment, MO Ruyue was picking berries from a tree and conveniently took out two bird eggs.
Come, eat something.
MO Ruyue released the ck snake from the small bamboo basket.
Next, she searched for thest two items. Of course, she had to avoid Shen
Yunyan.
ording to Shen Yunyans personality, she would definitely push all the me onto her head. At that time, Liu Xianghe would also target her.
Therefore, she not only had to guard against Shen Yunyan, but also Liu Xianghe,
She was going to y this game of deception seriously.
Ming Sihan looked at the birds egg and didnt have any appetite at all.
He did not need to eat these things.
Seeing that the little ck snake was still not eating, MO Ruyue sighed and said,How can you grow if you dont eat? Eat at least a little, or do you not know how to eat?
It seemed that he had never seen the little ck snake take the initiative to eat.
It was so thin and so small. It was normal for it to be a baby snake and not know how to eat.
Thus, MO Ruyue once again acted like a kind person and fed the little ck snake.
l dont think Ive given you a name yet. Why dont I call you Little ck? MO Ruyue stared at the little ck snake in her hand and pondered.
The name was simple and clear.
Ming Sihan turned his head and was speechless. Was this woman a bad name giver?
ckie, that was the name of any cat or dog.
You dont like it?
Seeing ckie turn its head away, MO Ruyue felt that ckie didnt like it very much. She rubbed her chin and thought hard.
Ive thought of it!
MO Ruyue snapped her fingers and thought of a good name.
Ming Sihan stared at MO Ruyue. Did this woman really think of a nice name?
Is Runtu good?
..Ming Sihan waspletely speechless.
He turned his head and felt that he had to leave this womans side as soon as he recovered his cultivation.
Forget it, forget it. Ill just call you Baby. After all, youre Baby Snake now, and Ill be your mother in the future! Ill raise you like a son.
MO Ruyue looked at the baby snake with a motherly glow in her eyes.
Suddenly, MO Ruyue thought of a very serious question. Was the baby snake a male or a female?
Let me see if youre male or female. Dont call me wrong.
As she spoke, MO Ruyue grabbed the ck snake and examined it carefully.
Ming Sihan had never suffered such humiliation before. He was actually being stared at by a woman!
I dont think theres a little chick. Wheres the snakes little chick? It should be a female!
MO Ruyue really couldnt differentiate between a male snake and a female snake.
She didnt see a chick, so it must be a female snake.
Being stared at was already a humiliation.
In the end, this woman actually boasted shamelessly that he did not have that thing!
This was simply a great humiliation for him.
If it wasnt for the fact that his cultivation hadnt recovered yet, he would definitely make this woman open her eyes and see if he had it.
If Ming Sihan were to take on a human form now, his face would definitely be ashen and gloomy..
Chapter 650 - 650: Saintess Selection Competition
Chapter 650 - 650: Saintess Selection Competition
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After filling her stomach, MO Ruyue continued to search for thest two items.
Heaven did not disappoint those who worked hard. She found the Exquisite Fruit on the cliff and the Blood Fruit on the top of the mountain.
In two days, she had already gathered all the items.
He did not encounter any special danger, and everything went smoothly.
However, she knew that the Tranquil Dream Forest was not a ce to stay for long, so she quickly left the Tranquil Dream Forest.
Shen Yunyan was probably still looking for him.
When MO Ruyue appeared, everyone looked at her strangely.
MO Chengfeng looked at MO Ruyue and was stunned for a few seconds. Junior Sister Ruyue, have you chosen to withdraw from thepetition?
It hadnt even been three days!
Qi Shaoyu stared at MO Ruyue. Clearly, he did not expect MO Ruyue to be the first toe out of the Tranquil Dream Forest.
Had he given up on thepetition?
It was impossible toplete the mission without three days.
Something dangerous must have happened in the Tranquil Dream Forest, which was why Ruyue was prepared to withdraw from thepetition.
Xia Zhixing and Ye Yunfeng both looked at MO Ruyue without saying anything.
They also felt that Ruyue had given up on thepetition.
Nio Ruyue shook her head. Ive alreadypleted my mission. Senior Brother MO, please take inventory of the items.
Have youpleted the mission?
Nio Chengfeng was a little surprised. This junior sister in front of him was weak. Logically speaking, she should not havepleted the mission so quickly.
This time, he was the first toplete the mission.
He stood up and walked in front of MO Ruyue. Then, he checked the items in MO Ruyues basket and began to count them one by one.
The other people below also started to talk among themselves.
When did MO Ruyue be so powerful? She was the first toe out of the Tranquil Dream Forest.
Maybe its luck. Going to the Tranquil Dream Forest ispletely dependent on luck.
Thats the only exnation.
MO Ruyues strength had been low for a long time. Everyone thought that MO Ruyue would never be able to be the Saintess.
There were many contestants who were more powerful than MO Ruyue.
I actually collected all of them.
MO Chengfeng looked at MO Ruyue in surprise. He was at a loss for words.
Originally, he had only wanted Nio Ruyue to sign up for the Saintess Tournament to make up for the number of participants, but he did not expect her to advance every time.
In the past, MO Ruyue was low-key and timid. She would not retaliate even if she was bullied by others.
MO Ruyue waspletely different now.
Which one was the real MO Ruyue?
MO Chengfeng couldnt help but look at MO Ruyue in a new light.
He did not know what had happened to this junior sister. His personality had changed so much.
Could it be that he was provoked by something?
MO Ruyue was indeed provoked. She realized that she had be an abandoned child of the immortal sect.
If it was useless, it would be an abandoned pawn.
She wanted to prove that abandoning a pawn could shake the world.
So, Senior Brother MO has passed?
MO Ruyue looked at MO Chengfeng with her beautiful eyes full of expectation.
Her eyes were bright and clear, making people feelfortable.
MO Chengfeng held the folding fan and nodded slowly, saying: You passed.
He changed the topic and continued, But the final result is still uncertain because the other contestants have note out yet.
If the other yers had also collected all the items, they might have added more.
There were only two positions for the Saintess, but there were ten participants.
There were too many wolves and too little meat.
Alright, then Ill just wait for them toe out.
MO Ruyue was in a good mood and was ready to take a good rest.
Qi Shaoyu looked at MO Ruyue as she walked over. Congrattions on being the first to return.
Thank you.
MO Ruyue faked a smile.
Xia Zhixing saw that MO Ruyue hade to her side again, so she quickly asked,Did you encounter any danger in the Tranquil Dream Forest?
l didnt encounter much danger. Everything went quite smoothly in the Tranquil Dream Forest.
MO Ruyue said casually.
She didnt mention the terrible things she had encountered in the Tranquil Dream Forest.
Even if she said that Shen Yunyan stole her things, no one would believe her.
Shen Yunyan had packaged herself very well, and she had also created an image of an innocent and kind person.
If she spoke ill of Shen Yunyan, not only would her senior brothers defend Shen Yunyan, but even the other people in the demon world would also defend
Shen Yunyan.
At that time, she would be known as a jealous woman.
Therefore, MO Ruyue did not mention any of the contestants when they left
the Tranquil Dream Forest.
Have you seen Junior Sister Yun Yan?
Xia Zhixing asked curiously.
He thought that Junior Sister Yun Yan would follow Junior Sister Ruyue out.
MO Ruyue shook her head and lied through her teeth.ln the Tranquil Dream Forest, I always acted alone. Junior Sister Yun Yan seems to have cooperated with someone else.
Why doesnt Junior Sister Yun Yan want to cooperate with her Senior Sister?
Shes siding with outsiders. Ill have to talk to her when the timees.
Although the participants of thepetition were all from the demon world, the demon world was also divided into other tribes and forces.
There was no doubt that the Demon Venerable was the spirit cultivator of the entire Demon Realm.
Even if they had their own territory and forces in the Demon Realm, they would still have to listen to the Demon Lord obediently in the end.
Senior Brother, forget it. I dont think Junior Sister did it on purpose.
Walking the path of the green tea, leaving the green tea with nowhere to go.
Xia Zhixing stared at MO Ruyue for a while. His gaze made Nio Ruyues hair stand on end.
Senior Brother, what happened? Why are you staring at me like that?
MO Ruyue asked softly.
Xia Zhixing retracted her gaze and find that Junior Sister is bing more and more considerate and understanding.
This time, Little Junior Sister has gone too far.
Hearing Xia Zhixings words, MO Ruyue defended Shen Yunyan again.
Xia Zhixing became even more dissatisfied with Shen Yunyan.
On the third day, the contestants came out of the Tranquil Dream Forest one by one.
The two sisters had exactly the same items, both with 20 items.
Leng Qiangwei was twenty times the same.
There are three kinds of willows and lotuses, and twenty-two kinds of clouds and smoke.
The others all had four or five.
Liu Xianghe and Shen Yunyan were both in a sorry state. It looked like they had been torn apart, and there was no image to speak of.
Shen Yunyan usually dressed up very exquisitely and had a good personality. Everyone liked Shen Yunyan.
But now, Shen Yunyan appeared in front of everyone like a crazy woman. No one knew what had happened to her in the Tranquil Dream Forest.
MO Chengfeng looked at everyones items and quickly announced,Other than
Shen Yunyan, everyone else can leave.
The two sisters sighed secretly. They didnt expect that neither of them had the chance to be saintesses.
He could only leave resentfully.
Leng Qiangwei also left in a carefree manner. Since she was not fated to be the saintess, she could only wait for three years.
Three yearster, she would participate in the Saintess Selection Competition.
The others also turned around and left.
However, Liu Xianghe was very unwilling. She knelt on the ground and said loudly, This Saintess selection is unfair.
I hope that Lord Protector will understand.
Shen Yunyans face darkened, but she did not say anything.
MO Chengfeng raised his eyebrows slightly and said,Whats unfair? Tell me about it.
Liu Xianghe pointed at MO Ruyue andined,l had already found more than ten items on the list, but 1 didnt expect MO Ruyue to steal them..
Chapter 651 - 651: A Killing Blade
Chapter 651 - 651: A Killing de
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Chengfeng looked at MO Ruyue and lowered his eyes. He asked in a low voice, Is what she said true?
Senior Brother MO, I swear to the heavens that I didnt take anything from her.
She did not take Liu Xianghes things, but she did take Liu Xianghes things from Shen Yunyan.
You still dare to deny it. That day, we were clearly resting in a cave. In the end, you disappeared, and so did my thingsAfter that, I went to look for you with Shen Yunyan and continued to collect things. However, I didnt expect Shen Yunyan to steal my things in the endBoth of you are sluts!
Liu Xianghe, dont nder others. I dont know if others took your things, but
I definitely didnt take your things from you.
MO Ruyue was telling the truth. She had taken the item from Shen Yunyan.
She thought that Shen Yunyan would be eliminated, but she didnt expect Shen Yunyan to take something from Liu Xianghe.
This Liu Xianghe was too stupid.
The same person had taken it twice, and he did not know why.
Just thinking about it made him feel sad!
Shen Yunyan also took the opportunity to say, Liu Xianghe, dont speak nonsense. I didnt take anything from you. I swear to God that if I take anything from you, the heavens will strike me with lightning.
Shen Yunyan nced at MO Ruyue proudly.
Who didnt know how to gossip?
Could it be that he was really struck by lightning?
She had never believed in this kind of nonsense.
The Heavenly Dao would not care about a small demonic cultivator like her.
MO Ruyue raised her eyebrows slightly. Was Shen Yunyan provoking her?
She stared at Shen Yunyan and said softly, Im sorry. Youre really going to be struck by lightning.
There was a loud rumble in the sky as a bolt of lightning struck Shen Yunyan.
This scene stunned everyone.
Shen Yunyan fell to the ground and could not understand why she was struck by lightning again.
Was it because he had lied?
However, she had often lied in the past and had not been struck by lightning.
Liu Xianghe looked at Shen Yunyan being struck by lightning and immediatelyughed happily. She said in a somewhat deranged manner, The heavens have eyes. This is retribution. Lets see if you still dare to lie and swear!
Seeing that she was struck by lightning, Liu Xianghe felt much less aggrieved and felt very happy!
She had never seen with her own eyes whether MO Ruyue had stolen her things.
However, she saw Shen Yunyan snatching the item from her hands.
Now, Shen Yunyan actually dared to lie through her teeth!
MO Ruyue stood up and said to Liu Xianghe,So now you know who is telling the truth and who is lying.
She had also sworn, but she was not struck by lightning.
It could be seen that what she said was true.
Liu Xianghe nodded and said apologetically,Looks like I misunderstood you. Although there were still some details that could not be exined, she hated Shen Yunyan the most. Seeing that Shen Yunyan had received the punishment she deserved, she felt much better.
She wanted everyone to know how despicable and shameless Shen Yunyan was.
As for the rest, it didnt seem important anymore.
Liu Xianghe looked at MO Chengfeng and said, Shen Yunyan is lying. Even the heavens cant stand it anymore. Please give me justice and make thepetition fairer.
Nio Chengfeng was a little disappointed in Shen Yunyan.
He thought about it and made a decision. He said,The candidates for this years Saintess selection are MO Ruyue and Liu Xianghe. Thank you, Guardian MO, for standing up for Xianghe.
Liu Xianghe was extremely happy.
MO Ruyue had already expected this oue, so she was not too happy.
[Salted Fish System: Congrattions to the host forpleting the mission. You have received a multi-functional brick. The system level has increased, and the backpack will automatically open.]
MO Ruyue was stunned when she saw her reward.
He had thought that it would be something awesome, but it was actually a multi-functional brick.
This reward was far from the Heavens Retribution Time-limited Experience Card and the Face Rejuvenation Pill.
Are you sure youre not teasing me?
[Salted Fish System: The multi-functional brick is equivalent to the number one divine weapon in this world. Its not an ordinary brick. It can kill gods and buddhas in its way.]
MO Ruyue didnt know if it had such a powerful effect, so she could only put it in her backpack.
He would practice it when he had the chance.
After bing the Holy Maiden, she had many things to do. At that time, he would definitely have the opportunity to use the multi-functional brick.
Prepare to meet the Demon Venerable.
MO Chengfeng nced at MO Ruyue, then turned around and left.
He did not know if this was good or bad.
MO Ruyue was not particrly happy that she had be the Saintess. Instead, she felt even more mncholic.
This was because he was about to meet the rumored bloodthirsty, cruel, and cold-blooded Demon Lord.
In the future, he would have to work by the Demon Lords side. If he did not do well, he might be erased by the Demon Lord.
Sessive Holy Maidens would make contributions to the Demon Realm, such as going out to get a treasure or revenge.
Saintess was a glorious title in the demon world, but in the outside world, everyone despised saintesses and killed them.
From the moment she chose to be the Saintess, she drew a clear line with the righteous immortal cultivators.
In the future, if they met again, they would be enemies.
Congrattions! She became the Holy Maiden.
Qi Shaoyu said to MO Ruyue, his mood heavy.
MO Ruyue stared at Qi Shaoyu and said, Theres something I dont understand. You used to hate me. Why are you treating me like this now?
l still remember that year when it was snowing on a thousand mountains. A little boy was almost frozen to death, but he was saved by a little girl in the end
Upon hearing Qi Shaoyus words, MO Ruyues mouth twitched. Youre that little boy, and Im that little girl?
Wasnt this a little too melodramatic?
No, Im the little boys brother.
MO Ruyue didnt have many memories of her original bodys past, so she naturally couldnt remember who her original body had saved in the past.
Its a pity that my little brother died in the end, Qi Shaoyu said in a low voice. But I still remember that you saved my little brother. Its just that the scar on your face prevented me from recognizing you as the little girl who gave birth to my little brother back then.
Hearing Qi Shaoyus exnation, MO Ruyue heaved a sigh of relief. She thought that she had encountered some melodramatic plot.
So it was his brothers brother.
Ive already forgotten about what happened back then. Im very sorry about your brother.
MO Ruyue revealed a regretful expression. She never thought that Qi Shaoyu would have a younger brother.
Unfortunately, his younger brother was gone.
Youre my brothers savior, so I dont want to see you walk into the abyss step by step.
Qi Shaoyu said sincerely.
This was because he had seen some saintesses either being executed or being chased by people from the outside world. In the end, they could not escape death and did not end well.
Unless he stayed in the Demon Realm for the rest of his life and did note into contact with the outside world.
But this was impossible.
As a Saintess, there were too many things that needed to be done. It was equivalent to a sharp de in the hands of the Demon Lord.
l understand what you mean, but this is my choice.
MO Ruyue said firmly.
Seeing this, Qi Shaoyu could only helplessly say,Alright, I respect your choice. No matter what, you cane to me.
Seeing Qi Shaoyus expression, MO Ruyue chuckled and clicked her tongue..
Chapter 652 - 652: Saving Fifth Senior Brother Is More Important
Chapter 652 - 652: Saving Fifth Senior Brother Is More Important
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Whats wrong?
Qi Shaoyu looked at MO Ruyue curiously, not understanding what MO Ruyues voice meant.
Was his words funny?
Although his strength was not the best in the Devil World, he was at least stronger than MO Ruyue.
If you have any difficulties, you can ask him for help.
l just feel that youve changed too much from before to now. You used to be so hostile towards me.
MO Ruyue crossed her arms in front of her chest, her heart filled with emotion.
Fortunately, she was mature and determined. Otherwise, she would have cried from anger.
At that time, there was a certain prejudice and misunderstanding about you. I
always felt that there were spies and spies from the outside world in our Demon Realm. You were always alone, so I suspected that you were a spy.
Qi Shaoyus words sent a chill down MO Ruyues spine.
It turned out that she had really been suspected!
The smile on his face stiffened.
But now that youve run for the position of Saintess, it means that youre not a spy.
Qi Shaoyu smiled embarrassedly.
MO Ruyue only wanted to change the topic because Qi Shaoyu was right to be suspicious.
To be honest, I really didnt tell Senior Brother MO about your drinking. I swear!
Qi Shaoyu covered his lips with a fist and coughed lightly. Im going to do a mission, not drink wine.
He had to rify this matter. He was not someone who would be misunderstood as drinking wine.
Then Ill pretend to believe you?
MO Ruyue raised her eyebrows slightly.
Qi Shaoyu was speechless. He was really there toplete a mission, but MO Ruyue did not believe him.
It was his fault for not making things clear earlier.
Originally, the Saintess was supposed to meet the Demon Lord after she was selected. However, the Demon Lord was still in seclusion, so the meeting was dyed.
After Shen Yunyan woke up, she found out that MO Ruyue and Liu Xianghe had both be saintesses. Not only had she been eliminated, but she had also embarrassed herself. She could not take this lying down.
MO Ruyue, just you wait!
Shen Yunyan gritted her teeth, wishing she could kill MO Ruyue.
On this day, MO Chengfeng gathered everyone over. The situation seemed to be very serious.
His face was serious and his expression was tense.
Senior Brother MO, what happened? Why did he gather everyone here in such a hurry?
MO Ruyue asked in confusion. Ye Yunfeng and Qi Shaoyu were both there, but Xia Zhixing was nowhere to be seen.
Second Senior Brother Baili Xi and Fourth Senior Brother Jing Xichen were often not in the Devil World. In the past two years, MO Ruyue had seen them a few times, but she could count them on her fingers.
The two of them were in charge of the outside world. The Demon Realm also needed to trade with the outside world, so they had to interact with the outside world.
Collect information about the various great immortal sects and all kinds of business transactions.
Of course, MO Ruyue did not know what they were doing. There was no doubt that they were all contributing to the Demon Realm.
Old Fifth has been captured by the people of the Jade Pure Immortal Sect. In a few days, Old Fifth will be beheaded in public
MO Chengfengs expression was a little ugly. The Jade Pure Immortal Sect was undoubtedly killing the chicken to warn the monkeys by doing such a thing to the people of the Demon Realm.
There was no one in the world who dared to do this to the demon world.
MO Ruyue understood the seriousness of the matter after hearing what MO Chengfeng said.
So, Ruyue, Shaoyu, Yunfeng, your mission is to save Fifth Brother.
MO Chengfeng gave the three of them an important task.
Letting MO Ruyue follow him was also to train MO Ruyue. After all, MO Ruyue was already a Saintess and would have to take on more difficult and dangerous missions in the future.
Yes, we will definitely save Senior Brother.
MO Ruyue replied. Since when was Xia Zhixing captured by the people of Yuqing Celestial School?
He even wanted to behead Xia Zhixing for public disy!
It seemed like the Jade Pure Immortal School was serious.
Senior Brother, what about me? What am I going to do?
Shen Yunyan saw that everyone else had received their mission and quickly spoke.
She should also be assigned a mission.
You dont need to do anything, just stay in the Demon Realm.
MO Chengfeng said indifferently.
Why? Senior Sister has a mission, why dont I have one? Does Senior Brother look down on me?
Shen Yunyan bit her lip, feeling a little exasperated.
She felt that she was more powerful than MO Ruyue. MO Ruyue was just a good-for-nothing in her eyes.
MO Chengfengs answer was, Not everyone can leave the Demon Realm.
Someone needs to stay in the Demon Realm.
Senior Brother MO, you are clearly biased and look down on me. You only think highly of MO Ruyue.
Shen Yunyan left in a hurry.
As she ran, she whimpered.
Everyone in the room was left speechless.
Hurry up and set off. Theres no time to lose. Yun Yan, go with her.
MO Chengfeng didnt really want to care about Shen Yunyan, especially after he found out that Shen Yunyan was so two-faced. He was a little disappointed in Shen Yunyan. He didnt say it, but he cared about it in his heart.
Fortunately, the matter did not blow up, and he did not punish Shen Yunyan specifically.
Yes.
MO Ruyue and the others responded and went to prepare themselves. They could set off at any time.
This time around, Ruyue left the baby snake in the Devil World and did not bring it with her, afraid that she would not be able to take good care of the baby snake.
[Salted Fish System: Please save Xia Zhixing within three days.] On the way to the Jade Pure Immortal Sect, he set off for a mission.
MO Ruyue was already used to the systems quests.
She suspected that this system was a very idle system. If she had something to do, it would be a mission for her.
She was following the mission, but the mission here was following her.
It was not challenging at all.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but ask, Can we rescue Fifth Senior Brother in three days?
Ye Yunfengs horse was running at the very front while Qi Shaoyus horse and MO Ruyues horse were riding side by side at almost the same speed.
Ye Yunfeng heard MO Ruyues voice and asked without turning his cant.
MO Ruyues face tensed up. Couldnt she save Fifth Senior Brother in three days?
Then, could he notplete the mission?
It will take at least two days to get from the Devil World to the Jade Pure Immortal School. When we arrive at the Jade Pure Immortal School, we still have to find out where Fifth Senior Brother is so that we can save him.
Qi Shaoyu exined.
Besides, can you bear to travel overnight? We still have to find an inn to rest at night.
Although Fifth Brother had to be saved, they had to preserve their strength before they could start the rescue.
Without physical strength, he would be exhausted when he reached the Jade Pure Immortal Sect. At that time, not only would he not be able to save Fifth Brother, but he would also lose himself.
If that happened, they would beughed at by the people of the outside world.
MO Ruyue thought for a moment and decided to go all out toplete the mission.
l think its more important to hurry and save Fifth Senior Brother. Time is life. Lets hurry at night. We must save Fifth Senior Brother within three days.
Ye Yunfeng hesitated for a moment, then said,Alright!
He thought so too, but he felt that as a senior brother, he should take care of his junior sister.
But now that Junior Sister said so, he was relieved.
Junior Sister Ruyue was really righteous.
It was clear which was more important.
However, Qi Shaoyu thought of it in a different way.
Junior Sister Ruyue cared a lot about Fifth Senior Brother. She had indeed seen her getting close to Fifth Senior Brother recently.
Moreover, Fifth Senior Brother had delivered medicine to Junior Sister Ruyue that time..
Chapter 653 - 653: Eliminating Future Trouble
Chapter 653 - 653: Eliminating Future Trouble
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Qi Shaoyu whipped his horse and looked straight ahead. He whispered, Do you care about Fifth Senior Brother very much?
Nio Ruyue heard Qi Shaoyus words, but she could not hear them clearly because of the wind.
As they passed by a forest, the wind rustled the leaves, and the air was filled with the refreshing fragrance of green grass.
Senior Brother, what did you say? I didnt hear you clearly!
MO Ruyue turned her head and nced at Qi Shaoyu, her eyes filled with confusion.
Qi Shaoyu collected his thoughts and said,Nothing.
Oh.
MO Ruyue was puzzled. Did she really hear wrongly?
After riding from day to night, MO Ruyue could feel the soreness in her groin. She felt that her two Senior Brothers would be even more ufortable.
After all, there was a difference between men and women. Men needed to be taken care of more.
Senior Brother, why dont we stop and rest for an hour before continuing?
After such a long time, he had to eat or pee.
The horses also needed to rest and eat grass.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Ye Yunfeng said,Theres a stream in front.
Ye Yunfengs voice was as cold as ever, but his words were mixed with a trace of warmth.
Alright.
MO Ruyue replied.
Qi Shaoyu felt depressed and didnt know why he was like this.
What a ghost!
When it was time to rest, Ye Yunfeng passed his water bag to MO Ruyue.
Thank you, Senior Brother.
MO Ruyue opened the water bag and took a sip without hesitation.
After drinking it, she returned it to Ye Yunfeng.
Ye Yunfeng didnt care too much and directly drank from the water bag.
However, Qi Shaoyu, who was watching from the side, felt a strange feeling in his heart.
After a short rest, they continued on their way.
They finally arrived at the small town near the Jade Pure Immortal Sect at noon the next day.
The three of them found an inn in the town to stay in.
There was still a day and a half before the mission contact.
MO Ruyue was a little anxious, but she couldnt rush Ye Yunfeng and Qi Shaoyu.
Tonight, I will go to the Jade Pure Immortal Sect to inquire about Fifth Junior
Brother. You guys wait here.
Senior Brother, Ill go with you.
No need, you can stay here.
After Ye Yunfeng finished speaking, he didnt exin further and then left directly.
MO Ruyue and Qi Hengyu were left behind.
l have to go too!
After saying that, MO Ruyue was about to leave.
However, Qi Shaoyu grabbed MO Ruyues hand with a solemn expression.
What are you going to do? To save Fifth Senior Brother, of course!
MO Ruyue looked determined.
Qi Shaoyu tightened his grip on MO Ruyues hand and said,Do you care so much about Fifth Senior Brother?
I just want to save him. I cant let Fifth Senior Brother be in danger. For the sake of Fifth Senior Brother, are you disregarding your own safety?
Ruyue must have other feelings for Fifth Senior Brother.
That was why he was so anxious.
It was all because the mission had a time limit and she did not want to miss the reward.
Of course, MO Ruyue wouldnt say that it was because of the time limit.
That was her secret, so there was no need to tell Qi Shaoyu.
Not even his senior brother.
Seeing her stutter, Qi Shaoyu understood.
He let go of MO Ruyues hand and said, Everyone is very worried about Fifth Senior Brother. Youre worried about him, and Im worried about him too. Weve been rushing for so long. We have to conserve our strength. Only by conserving our strength can we save Fifth Senior Brother.
We will definitely be able to rescue Fifth Senior Brother before tomorrow
Really?
Of course its true. You should go and rest first. When Third Senior Brotheres back, you can take action.
Alright then, Ill go rest for a bit. Senior brother, you should go rest as well. After saying that, MO Ruyue returned to her room.
As long as she could rescue Xia Zhixing before the afternoon of the day after tomorrow, she would havepleted her mission.
Thinking of this, MO Ruyue closed her eyes beautifully.
Outside, Qi Shaoyu stared in the direction that MO Ruyue had left in a daze.
Jade Pure Immortal Sect
Ye Yunfeng avoided his line of sight, his ghostly figure moving in the shadows of the Jade Pure Immortal Sect.
Two disciples of the Jade Pure Immortal School walked over.
Do you think someone from the Demon Realm wille to save that guy?
Wont we know tomorrow at noon? I dont think the demon world is that powerful. If we really fight, its still uncertain who will win.
The minions of the Demon Realm are indeed not very powerful, but the Demon Venerable is still quite strong.
l heard that the Demon Lord is bloodthirsty and ruthless. Is that true?
Thats for sure. Otherwise, why would the Devil Realm be rejected by all the immortal sects? The Demon Realm should be destroyed!
That makes sense. We should kill the people of the Demon Realm when we see them to prevent future troubles.
Two figures walked away and Ye Yunfeng quietly came out of the dark, a cold glint shing in his eyes.
He turned around and headed towards the dungeon.
However, there were people guarding the dungeon and it was not easy to get close.
Ye Yunfeng left the Jade Pure Immortal Sect and prepared to go back and make further ns.
Xia Zhixings life was not in danger.
He left the Jade Pure Immortal Sect silently without being discovered by anyone.
When Yun Feng returned to the inn that night, Qi Shaoyu stood up and asked,How did it go?
The Jade Pure Immortal School is heavily guarded. We cant get close to the dungeon at the moment. They will execute Fifth Junior Brother at three quarters tomorrow afternoon.
Ye Yunfeng said calmly, and then nned with Qi Shaoyu how to save them.
Those guys from the Jade Pure Immortal Sect werent just for show, they werent easy to deal with.
MO Ruyue slept until daybreak. She seemed to be in good spirits.
She had made up for her previous sleep.
After washing up, he went to look for his two senior brothers.
Ruyue, youre up?
Qi Shaoyu couldnt help but ask when he saw MO Ruyue walking over.
MO Ruyue nodded and rubbed her eyes.When are we going to save Senior
Xia
Senior Martial Brother Xia will be punished at three oclock in the afternoon. We just have to rescue Senior Martial Brother Xia before three oclock in the afternoon.
It was quite difficult for the three of them to go to the Jade Pure Immortal Sect to save people.
Ruyues strength was rtively low, and the main force was still Senior Brother Ye and him.
Alright.
Mo Ruyue replied.
Then, they went straight to the Jade Pure Immortal Sect.
Many disciples of the Jade Pure Celestial Sect were practicing in the square. Xia Zhixing was tied to a wooden stake.
Time slowly passed, and soon, it was almost a quarter to nine in the afternoon.
Sect Master, why hasnt anyonee from the Demon Realm? Are they not prepared to save this kid?
Wait a little longer. These people from the Demon Realm killed my nephew. I definitely wont let them off. As long as the people from the Demon Realme to save them, they wont be able to escape even if they have wings!
The sect leader of Yuqing Sect said coldly.
His eyes were filled with hatred.
Xia Zhixings body was covered in wounds, whip marks, and bruises on his handsome face.
Clearly, he had been abused by the Jade Pure Immortal Sect.
At this moment, three figures flew in from outside.
Xia Zhixing looked at the three ck figures. He wanted to tell them not toe over, but he couldnt do so.
The Jade Pure Immortal Sect had already set up an inescapable. Coming here was equivalent to courting death.
Youre finally here. I thought that the people of the Demon Realm were all cowards!
The sect leader sneered and immediately let the disciples surround the three of them.
She stood up and looked at MO Ruyue and the other twocently. Ill make sure you nevere back.
Ruyue, be careful.
Qi Shaoyu warned before he started to deal with the disciples of Celestial Sect.
There were many disciples in the Jade Pure Immortal Sect, and many of them had powerful cultivation bases.
Ye Yunfeng and Qi Shaoyu had no time to care about MO Ruyue..
Chapter 654 - 654: Be on Guard Against the Demon Realm
Chapter 654 - 654: Be on Guard Against the Demon Realm
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Youre so weak, yet you still dare to barge into the Jade Pure Immortal School. You overestimate yourself.
The sect leader looked at the three of them, the corners of his mouth curled up, and his eyes were filled with ridicule.
MO Ruyue panted as she dodged left and right. These people were quite powerful.
Hence, she took out a brick from her backpack.
MO Ruyues opponent looked at the brick in her hand and couldnt help butugh. Is the Demon Realm so poor that you dont have any decent weapons?
Eat my brick!
After saying that, MO Ruyue threw a brick at the other party.
Ah The man screamed and fell to the ground, his eyes shining.
The brick bounced back into MO Ruyues hand.
Youre pretty awesome.
MO Ruyue happily looked at the brick in her hand. It was indeed powerful.
Then, MO Ruyue raised her brick and struck one person at a time, and two at a time. She was simply going crazy.
Along the way, countless Jade Pure disciples fell to the ground.
Looking at the five Jade Pure Sect disciples who did not dare to step forward, MO Ruyue said, The five of you have already been surrounded by me. Be sensible and put down your weapons and surrender. Otherwise, Ill throw bricks at you.
This woman was too terrifying. She killed a disciple with a brick.
Every step MO Ruyue took, they would retreat three steps.
In the end, the three of them defeated all the disciples of Immortal School.
It was not that the three of them were powerful, but that the brick was too strong. After all, the brick was a very high-level existence. In addition, the overall strength of the Jade Pure Immortal School was low, so it was very easy to deal with.
MO Ruyue looked at the Sect Leader of Jade Pure Sect and smiled provocatively.ls this all your Jade Pure Immortal Sect can do?
l thought that the Jade Pure Immortal Sect was very powerful, but its only so-so.
Qi Shaoyu chimed in.
Ye Yunfeng also spoke in a low voice, Youre all trash!
When the sect master of the Jade Pure Sect heard the arrogant words of the three of them, he was so angry that he almost vomited blood.
Looks like I have to give you some
Before the sect leader of the Jade Pure Sect could finish his words, a brick hit his face and he fell to the ground.
MO Ruyue caught the brick that bounced back and dug her ears impatiently.So long-winded.
Ye Yunfeng and Qi Shaoyu were stunned. They silently apuded. Junior Sister Ruyue was too powerful!
Ye Yunfeng went to save Xia Zhixing and held the injured Xia Zhixing in his arms.
Qi Shaoyu stared at MO Ruyues brick and said,How could your brick be so powerful? Where did you buy it? Can you buy one for me too?
Ahem, I just randomly picked it up on the ground.
MO Ruyue coughed lightly. She had thought that the brick would only have an average effect. She did not expect it to be so powerful.
What a good treasure.
Hurry back to the demon world. Theres something wrong with junior brothers condition.
Ye Yunfeng said with a solemn expression.
Xia Zhixings face was dark as if he was poisoned.
MO Ruyue and Qi Shaoyu nodded and returned to the Devil World together.
[Salted Fish System: Congrattions to the host forpleting the mission. You have received a 100% chance of catching a white de barehanded experience card.]
MO Ruyue knew what it was, but she didnt know how effective it would be.
She habitually used the experience card and put the brick back into her backpack.
MO Ruyue had also be famous after this battle with the Jade Pure Immortal School.
Rumors spread that a female disciple of the Demon Realm had used a brick to exterminate the entire Jade Pure Immortal Sect.
This rumor immediately spread to all the immortal sects.
When MO Ruyue heard this rumor, she almost choked on her own saliva.
She had only knocked out the disciples of the Jade Pure Immortal School, so how could she have exterminated them all?
Even the entire Demon Realm believed this rumor.
Have you heard? Our new sainteintess wiped out the Jade Pure Immortal Sect by herself.
Really?
Of course its true. Its going crazy outside. Our Holy Maiden is really amazing.
Which Saintess is it?
MO Ruyue, of course.
When Qi Shaoyu heard this, he frowned. Things were getting worse.
This matter had both advantages and disadvantages for Ruyue.
In the Demon Realm, this matter would solidify Ruyues position as the Saintess and establish her prestige.
However, more and more people would hate Ruyue if she stayed outside.
After Xia Zhixing woke up, she was filled with gratitude when she learned that MO Ruyue had risked her life to save her.
In the past, he did not care about anyone. He came to the Demon Realm to make himself stronger and then go back for revenge.
But now, there was a figure in his eyes.
He had to be stronger! Only then could he protect her.
Xuanling immortal sect
A group of people were discussing the matter of the Devil Worlds Holy Niaiden destroying the Jade Pure Immortal Sect.
The people of the Demon Realm are really getting more and more arrogant.
They actually extended their hands to the immortal sects.
If you ask me, when our masteres out of seclusion, we must teach the Demon Realm a lesson.
Thats right. Otherwise, the people of the Demon Realm will bewless. Do they really think that we immortal sects are easy to provoke?
You guys are really too idle. Do you still need our master to make a move in the small Demon Realm? Any one of our immortal sects people can intimidate the people of the demon world.
At this moment, a voice sounded.
What are you doing here instead of practicing?
Eldest Senior Brother!
The disciples quickly shut their mouths and greeted the man respectfully.
Then, they all dispersed, not daring to continue chatting.
Eldest Senior Brother, they seem to be discussing the new Saintess of the
Demon Realm. Is this new Saintess really that powerful?
A man in white asked curiously.
Eldest Senior Brother Lan Qi snorted coldly and said, Its just a rumor. The Jade Pure Immortal Sect wasnt destroyed.
Then this rumor is too crazy.the man muttered.
Someone from the Demon Realm did go to the Jade Pure Immortal School and only took down everyone from the Jade Pure Immortal School.
Oh, so powerful? Although the Jade Pure Immortal Sect was a small sect, it was not too weak.
Lan Qis eyes focused. It seems that we have to be on guard against the Demon Realm.
During this period of time, he did not receive any news from the Demon Realm. The messages he sent out also sank into the sea without a response.
He didnt know what MO Ruyue was doing!
He was just like trash.
At that time, they could only send someone else to lurk in the Demon Realm.
He wanted to see what was going on.
Lan Qi returned to his room and wrote a letter. He found a pigeon and tied the letter to the pigeons leg.
He had raised a total of seven carrier pigeons, and now there was only one
Every time the carrier pigeon flew out, it never returned.
She didnt know if she was lost or something.
Devil World
MO Ruyue was about to rest, but she was a little hungry, so she woke up to find something to eat.
At this moment, the carrier pigeonnded beside the window and made a cooing sound.
It was another letter from the eldest senior brother of the immortal sect.
MO Ruyue pursed her lips and took the letter from the carrier pigeon. She read the contents. Lan Qi had asked her to investigate the identity of the Holy
Maiden and questioned her why she had not replied. He even threatened to abandon her if she did not reply.
She sneered and burned the note with fire. Lan Qi probably never dreamed that the Holy Maiden would be her.
Now, he was even threatening to abandon her.
She had done a lot for the immortal sect, but the immortal sect didnt want her to go back.
Thank you for the dinner, Eldest Senior Brother!
Nio Ruyue looked at the carrier pigeon with a dark green light in her eyes.
He could have a full meal again.
Ming Sihan noticed all of this and was puzzled. Who was this woman and who was shemunicating with?
Who was the Eldest Senior Brother she was talking about?
He had always known that there were traitors and spies in the Demon Realm. If they were found, they would not have a good ending.
He did not expect this woman to be a spy.
She had gone through so much trouble to be the Holy Maiden. It was probably the person behind this woman who had asked her to do so.
Interesting. He wanted to see what this woman wanted..
Chapter 655 - 655: The Last Few
Chapter 655 - 655: The Last Few
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue wrapped the pigeon with banana leaves and smeared ayer of yellow mud on it evenly. Then, she ced it on the fire pit to roast it.
After roasting the pigeon, she couldnt wait to eat it.
He also took some for the little ck snake.
Baby, eat something to fill your stomach.
MO Ruyue tore off a pigeon leg and ced it in the basket. Ming Sihan turned his head. Why would he eat these things?
Is the baby sick? Why isnt he eating?
MO Ruyue muttered to herself as she ate.
Her beautiful eyes were filled with worry.
The fragrance of pigeon meat was really tempting. Ming Sihan nced at MO Ruyue. Forget it, in order to not let this woman worry, he would just eat some.
Thus, Ming Sihan started eating pigeon meat.
It had to be said that this pigeon meat was much more delicious than bird eggs.
MO Ruyue only went to bed after she finished eating.
Late at night, Ming Sihan returned to his true form. His skin was pale, his long silver hair was fluttering in the wind, and his dark red eyes were exceptionally strange. His facial features were deep and defined, and he was as handsome as a demon.
Ming Sihan lowered his head and looked at his hands. He had finally recovered his original cultivation.
He nced at MO Ruyue and disappeared into the darkness.
The next day, MO Ruyue was woken up by a knock on the door.
Who is it?
MO Ruyue had changed into a ck dress, which entuated her fair skin.
Its me.
Qj Shaoyus voice sounded from outside.
MO Ruyue stood up and walked out. She yawned and looked at Qj
Shaoyu.Youre up really early. Theres a gathering today. Have you forgotten?
Qj Shaoyu raised his eyebrows.
MO Ruyue looked enlightened. She pped her forehead and said,l almost forgot todays date. Its a semi-annual gathering.
Yes, we can go over now.
Yes.
Just as the two of them walked out, Shen Yunyan appeared in their line of sight.
Shen Yunyan looked at MO Ruyue and smiled,Senior Sister is so powerful. I heard that Senior Sister wiped out the entire Jade Pure Immortal Sect by herself.
My good junior sister, take a guess.
Senior Sister is so weak. It definitely wasnt Senior Sisters doing.
Shen Yunyan did not believe that MO Ruyue had the ability to do so. The rumors about MO Ruyue had spread like wildfire. Even MO Ruyues strength was inferior to hers.
You guessed right, but theres no reward.
MO Ruvue gave a fake smile.
Qj Shaoyu saw that there seemed to be smoke between the two of them and said, Hurry up and go to the assembly. Dont waste time here.
Shen Yunyan let out a cry of pain. She staggered and her face revealed a painful expression.
MO Ruyue and Qj Shaoyu looked at Shen Yunyan in unison. What was this woman trying to do?
Shen Yunyan bit her lip and said weakly,Senior Brother, 1 think my leg is cramping.
Before Qj Shaoyu could say anything, MO Ruyue hurriedly said, Its fine. Its just a cramp. You wont die. Junior Sister, dont be afraid.
Im already in this state and youre still making sarcastic remarks. Senior brother, look at senior sister.
Shen Yunyans face was filled with displeasure. In the past, Qi Shaoyu would always help her and side with her. This time, it would be no exception.
Ru Yue Junior Sister said that she was going to have a big problem with her leg cramps. If you cant participate in the gathering, then go back by yourself.
Qj Shaoyus answer was beyond Shen Yunyans expectations. Senior Brother was actually standing with MO Ruyue
She was stunned and looked at Qj Shaoyu in disbelief.
Shen Yunyan rolled her eyes and suddenly came up with a n. I can attend the gathering, but I need Senior Brother to carry me. MO Ruyue was impressed by Shen Yunyans actions.
She wondered what Qj Shaoyu would do.
Qj Shaoyu nced at MO Ruyue.
Dont look at me. I cant carry her.
MO Ruyue rejected without hesitation. Shen Yunyan was not worthy of her piggyback!
Previously, Qi Shaoyu had treated Shen Yunyan quite well, so he probably wouldnt just sit by and do nothing.
Take your time. Ill go to the gathering first.
MO Ruyue left behind a sentence and then fell into a daze.
He didnt care about what happened here at all.
Qi Shaoyu watched MO Ruyue leave. He opened his mouth, wanting to say something, but in the end, he didnt.
Shen Yunyan watched MO Ruyue leave and a strange smile shed across her eyes.
It turned out that all her Senior Brothers were very good to her. However, ever since the scar on Mo Ruyues face had healed, she felt that all her Senior Brothers were biased towards MO Ruyue.
She was the demon worlds group pet.
All the senior brothers had to like her, and she wanted to be favored by all the senior brothers.
As for MO Ruyue, she was not worthy of being mentioned in the same breath as her.
Senior Brother
Shen Yunyan pretended to be weak and looked at Qi Shaoyu helplessly.
Qi Shaoyu looked at Shen Yunyan and saw a devil disciple passing by. He quickly said,The two of you send Little Junior Sister to the Ghost Doctor to take a look.
Yes.
The two disciples replied and walked towards Shen Yunyan.
Senior Brother, arent you going to send me there yourself?
Shen Yunyan bit her lip and said pitifully.
Her limpid eyes were filled with tears. Most men would not be able to reject such a gaze,
Qi Shaoyu hesitated for a moment before saying, The assembly is about to start, I have to go.
Shen Yunyan felt even more ufortable as she watched the figure disappear into the distance.
That man actually rejected her.
Little Junior Sister
Get lost! I dont need your help.
Shen Yunyan shouted angrily.
The two disciples were frightened by Shen Yunyans appearance. A second ago, she was so weak and pitiful, but the next second, she was as fierce as a shrew.
They left dejectedly. They really couldnt afford to offend them.
Shen Yunyan stood up straight. Her leg did not cramp at all.
There were already many people at the gathering. MO Ruyue saw Xia Zhixing and took the initiative to ask,Senior Brother, how are you feeling now?
Xia Zhixing knew that MO Ruyue was one of the people who saved her. She also knew that MO Ruyue had rushed to the Jade Pure Immortal School without stopping to save her.
It turned out that his junior sister was so good to him that he felt a trace of warmth in his heart.
l feel much better now. Thank you for your concern. Junior Sister Sister.
Xia Zhixing looked deeply at MO Ruyue.
His gaze fell on MO Ruyues hair and he said,Dont move. Theres a leaf in your hair.
As she spoke, Xia Zhixing reached out and plucked the leaves from MO Ruyues hair.
When he got close to Ruyue, he smelled a faint fragrance that calmed him down.
Qj Shaoyu, who was behind them, saw this scene. He stopped in his tracks and watched from afar.
Ruyue and Fifth Senior Brother were getting closer and closer.
Qj Shaoyu had a strange feeling when he thought of this.
At this moment, the sound of the bugle horn sounded. MO Chengfeng descended from the sky andnded on the stage.
The content of the meeting was roughly what they had done in the first half of the year, what they should do in the second half of the year, and the annual strength assessment was about to begin. At that time, those who failed would be chased out of the Demon World.
MO Ruyue was naturally aware of this rule. Every time, she would be ranked at the bottom.
He was almost chased out of the Demon Realm.
Xia Zhixing looked at MO Ruyue and said,You dont have to worry about this years exam, when the timeeses, your senior brother will be in the same team as you.
MO Ruyue tilted her head and looked at Xia Zhixing, who suddenly spoke to her. She was slightly surprised.
Its fine. I just need to pass the review anyway.
MO Ruyue did not care about grades at all.
Just like in exams, sixty points were long lived, and sixty-one points were wasted.
If he couldnt get into the top ten, the other results would be the same. There wouldnt be much difference..
Chapter 656 - 656: Digging a Pit for Yourself
Chapter 656 - 656: Digging a Pit for Yourself
Ill team up with you this year.
Xia Zhixings attitude was firm.
It was as if MO Ruyue would not give up until she agreed.
Seeing Xia Zhixings attitude, MO Ruyue could only say, Alright, alright, lets form a team.
Then, he said, This time, arent you going to team up with Little Junior
Sister? Little Junior Sister was the youngest and needed to be taken care of.
One must know that the seniors were in the same team as Shen Yunyan in the previous assessment. Naturally, Shen Yunyans results were ranked at the front.
Xia Zhixing said indifferently, There will definitely be other brothers and sisters in the same team as Little Junior Sister. So dont worry about her. Isnt Sixth Junior Brother very close to Little Junior Sister? He will definitely be in the same team as her.
Xia Zhixing nced at Qi Shaoyu.
Qi Shaoyu also heard the conversation between Xia Zhixing and MO Ruyue. He said,Little Junior Sister has other Senior Brothers, so she doesnt need to team up with me.
Why did they push him to Little Junior Sisters side?
He was not willing!
Arent you going to form a team?
Xia Zhixing asked hesitantly.
It would be a little difficult toplete the assessment without forming a team.
For example, Third Senior Brother Ye Yunfeng didnt like to team up and was alone, but his assessment results were quite good.
Theres still some time before the assessment. Theres no hurry.
Qi Shaoyu said calmly.
The whole morning passed just like that. MO Ruyue felt a little sleepy after listening to the rest of the conversation.
At this time, a Devil World disciple ran to MO Chengfengs side and whispered in his ear.
Everyone watched this scene closely, their eyes filled with curiosity.
Bring him up. MO Chengfeng nodded.
A man in a red robe carried a tied up man on stage,
The man had fair skin, a handsome face, and a pair of fox-like eyes. There was a golden bell hanging on his waist that jingled as he walked.
The voice was crisp and pleasant.
This person is a traitor of the Demon Realm that I have captured. Today, 1 request Senior Brother MO to execute this traitor in public. Anyone who betrays the Demon Realm will be killed without mercy!
The man stepped on the traitor. When he spoke, his flirtatious eyes turned cold.
His sharp gaze swept across everyone, and everyone was a little afraid.
Wei Ruyue was the most afraid. She looked at the man in red and subconsciously gulped.
The man in red was none other than Fourth Senior Brother Jing Xichen.
Those who could join the Demon Realm were almost all ruthless.
Although he was usually like a normal person, there was really no room for negotiation when it came to fighting.
MO Ruyue had already experienced this.
MO Ruyue felt a chill run down her spine when Jing Xichen nced at her. She did not dare to continue looking at Jing Xichen and hurriedly averted her gaze,
Those who betray the Demon Realm will be killed without mercy! Those who betray the Demon Realm will be killed without mercy!
Betrayer of the Demon World
The disciples below shouted loudly, and their voices shook the sky.
The traitor caught by Jing Xichen had long been blind and deaf. All of this was Jing Xichens n.
Today, I will execute this traitor in public as a warning to others!
MO Chengfeng drew his sword and shed at the traitor.
At this moment, MO Ruyue felt that her body was out of control, and she was 100% empty-handed.
When MO Chengfengs sword fell, MO Ruyue caught the de with both hands.
Everyone stared at this scene with their eyes wide open, not knowing what was going on.
MO Ruyue looked troubled. Was this the so-called one hundred percent chance of catching a de with bare hands?
The entire assembly of over a thousand people was silent at this moment.
What was awkward?
MO Ruyue felt like she could carve out a Rainbow Ind with her feet.
How should she resolve the situation?
MO Chengfeng came back to his senses and asked coldly,Seventh Junior
Sister, do you know what you are doing?
Mo Ruyue pursed her red lips. She really wanted to say that she didnt know what she was doing.
She had to give an exnation for this.
Jing Xichen stared at MO Ruyue. Was this the Junior Sister MO Ruyue with the scar on her face?
However, MO Ruyues face no longer had a scar. Her beautiful face was revealed to everyone.
But what was MO Ruyue doing?
Could he be in cahoots with the traitor?
Jing Xichen kept having suspicions.
Xia Zhixing and Qi Shaoyu looked at each other and calmly watched the scene on the stage.
Senior Brother MO, I dont think this is appropriate!
Nio Ruyue forcefully made up an excuse and slowly released her hands.
Damn it, he had a 100% chance of catching a de with his bare hands. How could he cancel this skill!
Whats wrong?
MO Chengfeng looked at MO Ruyue. He wanted to hear what reason MO Ruyue had.
Shouldnt traitors be killed?
MO Ruyue nced at the prisoner lying on the ground and suppressed the panic in her heart. She avoided Jing Xichens probing gaze and slowly feel that this is not enough to warn others. If we want the Demon Realm to have no traitors, we have to be more ruthless.
When Jing Xichen heard this, he looked interested. Whats more ruthless?
MO Ruyue looked at the traitor on the ground. He was blind and deaf. How was he any different from a cripple?
He didnt even know how to speak, and his tongue was probably pulled out.
Jing Xichen was quite ruthless.
Cut off his limbs, gouge out his eyes, cut his tongue, and then put him in a jar. Let him slowly die of exhaustion. Wouldnt that be more intimidating?
Killing a person is very simple. Its satisfying, but we cant let the other party feel pain. Therefore, we must magnify the pain
MO Ruyue then looked at MO Chengfeng.
Senior Brother MO, what do you think?
Actually, she didnt want to be in this situation either, but she couldnt think of a better way to escape.
MO Chengfeng stared at MO Ruyue, feeling that MO Ruyues move was extremely cruel.
How did shee up with this idea?
Before MO Chengfeng could say anything, Jing Xichen, who was sitting at the side, looked at MO Ruyue with admiration and pped his hands.
Very good, this indeed has a deterrent effect, making the betrayer feel extremely painful. Its much better than a knife.
Junior Sister, how did you think of this method? What is this method called?
Jing Xichens foxy eyes were filled with interest, and he became more and more interested in this junior sister in front of him.
In the past, he didnt know that his junior sister was so intelligent.
If youre bored, lets call you a human pig.
Nio Ruyue appeared nonchnt on the surface, but her mood was somewhat heavy.
She knew that once she started, she wouldnt be able to stop.
However, there was nothing he could do. After all, this was the Demon Realm.
Human pig, not bad.
Jing Xichen smiled. He already had an image in his mind.
The disciples below whispered to each other, expressing that this method was too terrifying.
The Holy Maiden is really vicious. She actually thought of such a method.
Thats why you cant mess with women, especially women like the Holy Maiden.
Jing Xichen announced loudly, Human pig is a very good method. If any traitors or spies are caught in the future, they will be dealt with this vvay. They will not be forgiven!
MO Ruyue secretly wiped the sweat off her forehead. Did she just dig a hole for herself?
Ming Sihan watched this scene from the dark, and his dark red eyes darkened.
The traitor was made into a human pig and hung on the city tower that led in and out of the demon world. Anyone who passed by the city tower could hear the painful wails of the human pig, which made the passers-by feel creepy.
The disciples of the demon world were even more afraid of the new saintess. She could actually think of such a vicious way to deal with traitors.. How could there be traitors and spies entering the demon world?
Chapter 657 - 657: The Aura of a Strong
Chapter 657 - 657: The Aura of a Strong
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After the meeting ended, MO Ruyue returned to her room and drank some tea to calm herself down.
She quickly summoned the Salted Fish System, wanting it to eliminate the skill of catching a de with bare hands.
However, the Salted Fish System did not have the ability to eliminate skills. He could only wait for the experience time to pass.
[Salted Fish System: Host, pleaseplete the mission of collecting tinder.]
Wei Ruyue looked confused. Whats a fire seed?
Why did the Salted Fish System suddenly issue a mission this time?
[Salted Fish System: The tinder mission is to collect the seven-colored tinder, which is specially used by the immortal sect for alchemy.]
MO Ruyue looked enlightened.
If she had told her earlier, wouldnt she have known about the fire seeds used by the immortal sects to refine pills?
Tinder was generally easy to find, but the seven-colored tinder was the most difficult to find among all tinder. This mission seemed to be a bit of a noob. Fortunately, she was not forced to collect fire seeds, so she could do whatever she wanted.
There was no time limit for this mission, so she could do it whenever she wanted.
Junior Sister, are you in the house?
A quiet voice came from outside. MO Ruyue immediately knew who it was.
MO Ruyue collected herself and said,Yes. Then can Senior Brothere in?
Come in.
MO Ruyue stood up and walked towards the door. The moment she opened the door, she saw a pair of flirtatious fox-like eyes and a signature smile on her face.
Looking at Jing Xichen, Wei Ruyue had an indescribable feeling.
Most of them were afraid. This person was an expert in using poison and could kill people without them noticing.
She was afraid that she would be poisoned to death by Jingxichen.
Senior Brother, please sit down. Is there anything you need?
Mo Ruyue smiled in a ttering manner, feeling a little nervous. She poured a cup of tea for Jing Xichen.
Jing Xichen could tell that MO Ruyue was nervous. He picked up the teacup on the table and took a sip.
Junior Sister, what are you nervous about? Are you afraid that Shixiong will eat you?
He had a yful look on his face. He had not interacted much with this junior sister before, so he did not understand her personality.
She could clearly say such a vicious way to torture people, but now she had be reserved in front of him.
Was he that scary?
Jing Xichen thought to himself.
No, its just that senior brother suddenly came. I dont have anything to entertain you with.
MO Ruyue smiled faintly.
She was afraid of Fourth Brother from the bottom of her heart. The main reason was that her identity was there, and she had dug a hole for herself today.
It was also time to find a reliable way out for himself.
If her identity was exposed one day, she would be in trouble.
Previously, Senior Brother had neglected you. I didnt expect Junior Sister to be such a wonderful person. I heard that Junior Sister has even chosen the Saintess? l was just lucky. MO Ruyueughed.
Was it luck?
Jing Xichen didnt quite believe it.
MO Ruyue nodded and said firmly,Yes, I was lucky.
Of course, other than luck, he also used a little cheat.
In this day and age, one could only live more freely with a cheat.
The two of them did not speak, and the atmosphere instantly quieted down.
It was a little strange.
At this moment, MO Chengfeng also came over and his gaze fell on Jing
Xichen and MO Ruyue.
Senior Brother MO, why are you here?
MO Ruyue stood up to wee him. She could not stand the awkward atmosphere of silence at all.
He was most afraid of a sudden silence.
MO Chengfengs appearance broke the awkward atmosphere. He had saved the situation at the right time.
Senior Brother, whats the matter?
Jing Xichen also asked, the corners of his mouth curling up slightly.
As he stood up, the golden bell on his waist rang.
Nio Chengfeng was holding a silver bone fracture fan in his hand. He was dressed in a purplish-red robe, looking evil and unruly. The red spider lily on his forehead was unusually seductive.
The Demon Venerable hase out of seclusion.
Should I go over now?
MO Ruyue was a little flustered. The Demon Venerable hade out of seclusion, so she had to go see him.
MO Ruyue was terrified when she thought of the Demon Venerable.
However, she could not show her fear.
He was walking further and further down this path.
Yes, Ill go over now.
MO Chengfeng nodded. The Saintess was chosen by him, but in the end, he still had to get the Demon Lords approval.
If the demon didnt agree, they would have to choose another saintess.
Generally speaking, the Demon Lord would not disagree. Anyway, they were all helping the Demon Lord. The Demon Lord did not care who the Saintess was.
Alright, then Ill go to the Demon Pce now.
MO Ruyue said as she walked out.
He had only taken a few steps when MO Chengfeng reminded him, When you meet the demon, dont stare at him. He doesnt like it. Thank you for your reminder, Senior Brother.
MO Ruyues face was filled with gratitude.
Who exactly was the Demon Lord? He had been here for almost three years, but he had never seen the Demon Lord once.
This time, he was able to meet the Demon Venerable, but he was told by MO Chengfeng not to stare at him.
Liu Xianghe also went to see the demon. After all, she was also a saintess. The demon came out of seclusion, so both of them had to go.
Nio Chengfeng was surprised to see Jing Xi at MO Ruyues ce.
Why are you here with Junior Sister Ruyue?
Jing Xichen smiled. I thought Junior Sister Ruyue was quite interesting, so I wanted to know more about her. It seems that a lot of things happened in the Demon Realm while I was away, and I missed a lot of exciting moments. Towards the end, a hint of regret appeared on Jing Xichens face.
He loved crowds.
Many things have indeed happened.
MO Chengfeng thought for a while and agreed with Jing Xichen. Moreover, most of the things had to do with Junior Sister Ruyue.
MO Ruyue wasnt like this at first, but she seemed to have suffered some kind of stimtion that caused her personality to change.
Jing Xichen walked out and asked,l heard that Junior Sister Ruyue exterminated the entire Jade Pure Immortal School. Is that true?
Its just a rumor. However, Junior Sister Ruyue did beat up many disciples of the Jade Pure Immortal School. I didnt expect the rumors to spread like this. There were good and bad rumors.
The good thing was to establish the prestige of the Saintess, and the bad thing was to be hunted down by the various great immortal sects and factions. Oh, theres really such a thing. Its getting more and more interesting.
Jing Xichens face was filled with anticipation. He thought that all the rumors outside were just rumors.
He didnt think that such a thing really happened.
This was too interesting. He hoped that MO Ruyue would not disappoint him.
The two of them followed him to the Demon Pce.
MO Ruyue stepped into the cold hall and instantly felt an oppressive aura, making people not dare to act rashly.
Perhaps this was the aura of a powerhouse.
He could feel it when he was in the same environment.
Liu Xianghe also lowered her head and did not dare to speak. The two of them knelt down at the same time.
The new Saintess Liu Xianghe greets the Demon Lord.
The newly promoted Holy Maiden, MO Ruyue, greets the Demon Venerable.
Liu Xianghe and MO Ruyue spoke one after the other. They knelt on one knee and lowered their heads, not daring to look up.
Ming Sihans gaze fell on MO Ruyue. He lowered his voice and said coldly,Mo
Ruyue, stay here. The rest of you, leave.
Liu Xianghe and MO Ruyue were stunned when they heard the mans cold words.
What was going on?
I only need one Saintess. Do you understand?
Ming Sihans voice seemed to have be even colder, mixed with a hint of impatience.
Demon Venerable, Ive already advanced in rank. Why should I choose MO Ruyue over me?
Liu Xianghe lowered her head and refuted unwillingly. She was also a newly promoted saintess, why didnt she want her?
She couldnt understand what was going on.
There had always been two saintesses, but this time, the demon only left one behind..
Chapter 658 - 658: Warm-hearted
Chapter 658 - 658: Warm-hearted
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Just because Im the master of the Demon World, I can do whatever I say. Do you have any objections?
Ming Sihan snorted. This stupid woman was asking him why. No one had ever dared to ask him that before.
Liu Xianghe did not dare to say anything more and could only reluctantly leave the hall.
She was actually eliminated by the Demon Venerable. Damn it
When Jing Xichen and MO Chengfeng saw Liu Xianghe walk out of the hall, they looked at each other. What was going on?
Thus, MO Chengfeng called out to Liu Xianghe and asked,Why did youe out?
Liu Xianghe turned her head to look at MO Chengfeng, stopped in her tracks, and snorted, The Demon Lord eliminated me.
What?
Nio Chengfeng was filled with surprise. Why did the demon eliminate Liu Xianghe?
This didnt seem normal.
Why did the demon eliminate you?
Jing Xichen asked curiously.
Could it be that Liu Xianghe had offended the demon?
This seemed impossible. If Liu Xianghe had offended the Demon Venerable, she would not have been able to walk out of the hall.
If only I knew the reason.
Liu Xianghe left the Demon Pce in a huff. She had thought that after she became the Saintess, she would definitely have great ambitions and let everyone in the world remember her name. In the end, the demon did not ept her.
She could only leave.
MO Chengfeng lowered his eyes, his eyes filled with confusion. This did not seem to be in line with the Demon Lords personality.
Jing Xichen raised his chin and looked at Liu Xianghes back as she left. He said thoughtfully,Demon Venerables actions are unpredictable.
Yeah, I wonder how Junior Sister Ruyue is doing.
With that, the two of them looked into the hall.
No one could enter the hall unless they were summoned by the Demon Lord.
Everyone knew this rule, and no one had ever broken it.
Although MO Chengfeng was worried about MO Ruyue, he didnt go in.
In the main hall, MO Ruyue did not dare to breathe loudly. She lowered her head and looked down.
Liu Xianghe had already left the huge pce, leaving only her and the demon.
However, the demon didnt say anything. This damn pressure made her feel ufortable.
Can you give her a quick death? If she can stay, she will stay. If she can leave, she will leave immediately.
You said your name is MO Ruyue?
The Demon Venerable suddenly spoke. His voice was calm, making it impossible to tell whether he was happy or angry.
MO Ruyue pursed her lips and said,Yes, Demon Venerable.
This venerable self left you to be the Holy Maiden. Do you know what the Holy Maiden shoulders? Can you do it?
The Saintess shoulders the honor and disgrace of the entire Demon Realm. I can definitely do it.
MO Ruyue said firmly.
In the past, there were always two Saintesses, but now there was only her. What was this Demon Lord up to?
Even though the Demon Venerable was not far away, MO Ruyue still did not have the guts to raise her head to look at him.
Ming Sihan was very satisfied with MO Ruyues attitude. However, he thought that this woman might be a spy from the outside world, so he said,Its good that you can do it. If you betray the Demon Realm one day or do something unfavorable to the Demon Realm, then I will use your method to turn you into a human pig.
This subordinate will never betray the Demon Realm, let alone the Demon
Venerable.
MO Ruyue knew that there was no turning back.
In the future, he could only draw a clear line with the immortal sects.
Very good. I need seven-colored fire seeds. Go and help me find seven-colored fire seeds.
Ming Sihan thought for a moment and gave MO Ruyue a small task. The seven-colored fire seed was not useful to him. Those immortal sects only cared about the seven-colored fire seed.
MO Ruyue paused.
What, you dont want to?
Ming Sihan saw that MO Ruyue was stunned and raised his eyebrows.
Was she unwilling?
No, this subordinate is very willing. Demon Venerable, just wait for this subordinate to find the seven-colored fire seed.
MO Ruyue was just a little shocked. Ming Sihans mission was exactly the same as her systems mission.
It was just that the system would give her a reward after shepleted the mission. She wondered if the Demon Lord would give her a reward after shepleted the mission.
Seeing how confident MO Ruyue was, Ming Sihan smiled slightly. He was looking forward to it.
Alright, I look forward to your performance. This is the Saintess Token. As he spoke, he threw the token that symbolized his identity in front of MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue picked it up and touched the golden token. She couldnt help but sigh. This should be a token made of pure gold, right?
It felt different when touched. It was expensive.
Thank you, Demon Venerable.
MO Ruyue immediately thanked him.
This token allowed her to transfer disciples of the Demon World. In the future, her status would be the same as Senior Brother Mo.
No one dared to criticize her.
She could bully a green tea like Shen Yunyan however she wanted.
Theres nothing for you to do here. You can leave.
Yes.
Nio Ruyue stood up and turned around with her head lowered. She did not
even look at Ming Sihan from the beginning to the end.
She quickly left the hall, afraid that the demon behind her would turn into a beast and swallow her whole.
Outside, the sunlight shone on her body and dispelled the cold.
It was winter and summer inside and outside the hall.
She raised her hand to wipe away her sweat, which frightened her.
Outside, MO Chengfeng and Jing Xichen watched MO Ruyuee out. Their eyes fell on the Saintess Token in her hand.
The two of them immediately knew what was going on.
It seems like Junior Martial Sister Ruyue has obtained the approval of the
Saintess. Congrattions, Junior Martial Sister Ruyue. A sincere smile appeared on Jing Xichens face,
That pair of beautiful fox-like eyes was still charming.
Congrattions, Junior Sister Ruyue.! MO Chengfeng also congratted her.
Thank you, thank you. Speaking of which, why are the two senior brothers here?
Of course, Im worried about Junior Sister Ruyue, but its obvious that Senior Brother MO and 1 are worried for nothing. Junior Sister Ruyue has obtained the Demon Lords approval.
Jing Xichen said, ying with a green leaf in his hand.
However, why didnt Liu Xianghe obtain the Demon Lords approval? Could it be that the Demon Lord was going to choose another Saintess?
In the past, the Demon Venerable would never personally intervene in the selection of the Saintess. It was all handled by Senior Brother Mo.
The result this time was a little unexpected.
The Demon Lord said that he only needed one Saintess, so I was left behind.
MO Ruyue did not understand why the Demon Venerable would do this. Could it be that the Demon Venerable thought highly of her?
Or did the demon have other intentions?
MO Chengfengs expression was solemn. He couldnt understand the Demon Lords thoughts.
There were originally two saintesses, but now there was only one left.
What does the demon want to do?
Did the Demon Lord ask you toplete any missions?
Jing Xichen asked.
When a Saintess took up her post, she would receive a trial mission from the Demon Lord. Usually, a Saintess wouldplete it, so it was not a difficult mission.
MO Ruyue didnt hide anything from her two Senior Brothers and said directly,The Demon Lord asked me to find the seven-colored fire seed and bring it back.
This mission was neither difficult nor easy.
Does Junior Sister need Senior Brothers help?
Jing Xichen asked with concern. He was very interested in this junior sister and didnt mind helping her during her mission.
MO Ruyue was about to ask for help, but the Demon Lord didnt say that she couldnt ask for help with the mission.
He just needed to bring the seven-colored fire seed back.
If Fourth Senior Brother is willing to help, Junior Sister will definitely be extremely grateful.
MO Ruyue thanked him in advance. She did not expect this ruthless Fourth Brother to be so warm-hearted.
Jing Xichen was only ruthless to enemies and traitors. Under normal circumstances, he was quite a good person.
Therefore, MO Ruyue had a good impression of Jing Xichen..
Chapter 659 - 659: Risking His Life to Save Her
Chapter 659: Risking His Life to Save Her
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Then when is Junior Sister Ruyue going to set off?
Ill go back first. When the timees, Ill go to your residence to find you. She still had to settle down the baby snake.
Jing Xichen nodded with a smile on his face. Alright, then Ill wait for Junior Sister Ruyue.
MO Chengfeng and Jing Xichen watched MO Ruyue leave.
He only retracted his gaze when his back disappeared from his sight.
Jing Xichen raised his chin with a hint of yfulness on his face. Junior Sister
Ruyue has be more interesting than before.
MO Ruyue had seen him before, but it was not as interesting as it was now.
Therefore, he did not pay much attention to MO Ruyue.
He had gained a lot this time.
MO Chengfeng nced at Jing Xichen, who seemed to be interested in MO Ruyue. He couldnt help but remind him,The other immortal sects and major powers are also searching for the Seven-Colored Fire Seed. When the timees, there will definitely be a fierce battle.
Senior Brother, I will be careful.
The smile on Jing Xichens face faded a little. It was indeed not that easy to find the seven-colored fire seed.
MO Ruyue returned to her room and found that the baby snake in the basket was gone.
Wheres the baby snake?
She couldnt help but mutter, then searched around the room.
Xia Zhixing and Qi Shaoyu walked over and saw MO Ruyue looking for the baby snake.
Junior Sister Ruyue, what are you looking for?
Xia Zhixing asked with a trace of doubt on his handsome face.
Nio Ruyue stood up and saw Xia Zhixing and Qi Shaoyu walking over. She felt a little helpless.
l raised a baby snake before, but when I came back, I found that the baby snake was gone.
That was her pet.
So what if you lost it? When the timees, wont senior brother just catch a new baby snake for you?
He thought it was a big deal.
They already knew that the Demon Lord had epted Ruyue as the Saintess. Originally, there was also Liu Xianghe, but the Demon Lord did not keep her.
Therefore, MO Ruyue was the only Saintess this time.
The unique Saintess would probably be envied by many female disciples.
MO Ruyue listened to Xia Zhixings words but didnt say anything.
Although she hadnt been with the baby snake for long, she still had some feelings for it.
Baby snakes could not be reced.
Qi Shaoyu saw through MO Ruyues thoughts and said,Maybe the baby snake just left for a while and wille backter.
l hope so.
MO Ruyue sighed. She could only think so.
The baby snake had disappeared. The Nyodians turned the house upside down but could not find it. She hoped that the baby snake would return to her side.
Xia Zhixing pursed her lips, feeling that she had said something wrong.
Then, Xia Zhixing changed the topic and said,Ruyue, did the demon give you a mission?
Yes, the Demon Lord asked me to find the seven-colored fire seed.
MO Ruyue answered honestly. She wasnt worried about whether the mission would seed or not.
If she did not seed, she would not return to the Demon Realm.
He had to seed, or else he would die.
Ill go with you. Its not that easy to find a seven-colored fire seed.
Qi Shaoyu suggested with a serious expression. Moreover, Ruyue was not very strong. What if the enemy had a lot of people and was especially strong? What should they do?
Therefore, he felt that Ru Yue needed his help.
Xia Zhixing heard Qi Shaoyu!s words and can also go with you to search for the Seven-Colored Fire Seed.
MO Ruyues mouth twitched. She had never seen them so proactive.
To be honest, MO Ruyue was a little ttered.
Thank you for your kindness, but I dont need your help. Fifth Senior Brother, you should recuperate in the Demon Realm. Sixth Senior Brother, you should also go and do your things.
MO Ruyue rejected their kindness.
It wasnt that she looked down on their strength, but that she was prepared to search for the Seven-colored Fire Seed with Jing Xichen.
Xia Zhixing and Qi Shaoyu did not expect to be rejected by Ruyue.
My injuries dont matter. The most important thing now is to help youplete your mission. You risked your life to save me before, so now its my turn to repay you.
If Junior Sister Ruyues first mission was notpleted, the Demon Lord would definitely be dissatisfied with her.
At that time, she might not be able to keep her position as the Saintess.
Ruyue, theres strength in numbers. I wont hold you back.
Qi Shaoyu quickly said.
In the past, he was unwilling to help. Now, he wanted to help, but Ruyue was unwilling.
With a gentle smile on her fair face, MO Ruyue confessed,To tell you the truth, Ive already made an appointment with Fourth Senior Brother to search for the Seven-Colored Fire Seed together, so theres no need to trouble Fifth Senior Brother and Sixth Senior Brother.
Xia Zhixing and Qi Shaoyu finally understood why Ruyue had rejected them.
It turned out that Ruyue had already made an appointment with Fourth Senior Brother. No wonder she rejected them.
So, Ruyue, youre going with Fourth Senior Brother, right?
Xia Zhixing sighed. She finally wanted to do the task with Junior Sister Ruyue, but she
Qi Shaoyu did not say anything else. It turned out that Ruyue already had a candidate.
He had thought that Ruyue liked Fifth Senior Brother, but heter found out that Ruyue only treated Fifth Senior Brother as a senior brother and junior sister.
He was a little happy to know this.
This meant that Junior Sister Ru Yue didnt like Fifth Senior Brother.
Yes, I have to set off too. Senior brothers, if you see my baby snake, please take good care of it.
MO Ruyue didnt waste any more time on the matter of the baby snake.
If the baby snake was fated with her, it woulde back. If not, it was fate.
Then, MO Ruyue simply packed her things and went to look for Jing Xichen.
Jing Xichen was still quite a distance away from where she lived.
On the way, MO Ruyue met Liu Xianghe, who was blocking her way.
Liu Xianghe questioned MO Ruyue, Why did the Demon Lord leave you behind but not me?
Did you say something bad about me in front of the demon?
If not, why would the Demon Lord not want her to be the Saintess?
After thinking about it, she felt that the problemy with MO Ruyue.
Therefore, she stopped MO Ruyue when she saw her.
Arent you thinking too much? If the Demon Lord doesnt want you, why are you looking for me? My words carry little weight. You dont think that a dignified Demon Venerable has to listen to me, right?
MO Ruyue did not expect Liu Xianghe to question her.
It had to be said that the Demon Lords choice was correct. Such intelligence basically bid farewell to the position of Saintess.
After hearing MO Ruyues words, Liu Xianghe immediately felt that what MO Ruyue said made sense.
The entire cultivation world was terrified of the mighty Demon Venerable.
So, why would such a powerful person listen to MO Ruyue?
But I still dont understand. In what way am I inferior to you? M/hy did the
Demon Lord choose you over me?
Liu Xianghe walked around Wei Ruyue, her strength was only so-so!
If there was anything better than her, it was just that her skin was a little better.
Why would a dignified Demon Lord care about this kind of appearance?
In terms of intelligence, MO Ruyue could notpare to him.
l think you should ask the Demon Lord about this. Why are you asking me? Im not a worm in the demons stomach.
Nio Ruyue looked helpless.
Instead of being paranoid here, Liu Xianghe might as well go practice and improve her cultivation.
After saying that, MO Ruyue turned around and left, not wanting to pay any more attention to Liu Xianghe..
Chapter 660 - 660: Killing the Demonic Saintess
Chapter 660: Killing the Demonic Saintess
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
She passed through a small bamboo forest and finally arrived at Jing Xichens small bamboo house.
This ce looked even more shabby than the ce she lived in. Fortunately, the environment was quiet.
The small bamboo house was built on top of the pond, and there was the sound of flowing water beside it.
Fourth Senior Brother!
MO Ruyue stood outside and shouted. She immediately saw the ck poisonous spider lying on the roof, a few poisonous frogs in the water, and the Zhuyeqing hidden in the bamboo.
No matter whether it was day or night, no one woulde to disturb Jing Xichen.
If one was not careful and was bitten by these poisonous creatures, they might die.
Initially, MO Ruyue had thought that this ce was quiet and peaceful, but now, she felt that this ce was filled with danger. It was definitely the closest ce to Hell.
On the surface, she looked beautiful and charming, but in fact, she was dangerous and fatal.
This was indeed very Jing Xichen. He was also beautiful and charming, but his methods were really cruel.
MO Ruyue did not dare to approach the small bamboo house.
Fourth Senior Brother, Im here to find you.
She raised her voice and looked forward to Jing Xichens appearance.
With a creak, a high-profile red figure appeared in his sight.
Jing Xichen had his signature smile on his face, and MO Ruyues figure was reflected in his beautiful fox eyes.
The corners of his mouth curled up slightly as he said to MO Ruyue, Why are you standing there?
Forget it. Senior Brother, there are too many traps on your side. Im afraid that if Im not careful, Ill be consigned to eternal damnation.
MO Ruyue still cherished her life and dared not joke around with it.
Jing Xichen knew what MO Yue was talking about. His eyes turned and the curve of his mouth deepened.Junior Sister, dont be afraid. Even if you identally fall into a trap, Senior Brother will save you.
What if Senior Brother cant save him?
Junior Sister, are you doubting Senior Brothers medical skills?Jing Xichen raised his eyebrows slightly. Did Ruyue not trust him that much?
Im not doubting you. Im just thinking too much. What if you save me and leave behind some side effects? After all, it was a poisonous creature.
That was not a small pet.
Hearing MO Ruyues doubts, Jing Xichens smile grew wider. If there are any side effects, Fourth Senior Brother will take care of you for the rest of your life. Is that okay?
This is not impossible.
MO Ruyue looked at Jing Xichen in front of her and felt that this Senior Brother was quite easy to talk to.
Can we set off now?
Jing Xichen stopped smiling and stared at the woman in front of him.
The woman had fair skin and a delicate oval face. Her facial features were delicate and charming. She was tall and her ck hair was tied into a neat ponytail. She was wearing a ck outfit and looked valiant.
Her smile was beautiful and moving.
Why didnt he realize before that Seventh Junior Sister was actually a beautiful yet delicate beauty?
Yes, thats enough. However, does senior brother know where the seven-colored fire seed is? We dont have any information or clues about the seven-colored fire seed.
MO Ruyue also wanted to look for the seven-colored fire seed, but she didnt have any concrete clues.
He wondered if Fourth Brother had any other clues.
Jing Xichen came back to his senses and thought for a moment. This isnt a big problem. We can just ask Second Senior Brother for help.
Second Senior Brother?
Thats right. Follow me. Well go to Dongli Country first to find Second Senior Brother to gather information.
Hearing Jing Xichens words, Wei Ruyue had no choice but to agree.
Speaking of which, she had only met Second Senior Brother once and had never interacted with him in depth.
However, Second Brothers name was very nice. He was called Bai Lixi Jian.
Alright, lets set off now.
Lets go.
Thus, MO Ruyue and Jing Xichen embarked on the journey of searching for the seven-colored fire seed.
Shen Yunyan watched MO Ruyue and Jing Xichen leave on their horses, her eyes full of jealousy.
There should have been two Saintesses, but the Demon Lord only left MO Ruyue.
What did MO Ruyue do to be the only Saintess of the Demon Realm?
She didnt understand why the demon would do this.
Even Fourth Brother had to apany MO Ruyue to find the seven-colored fire seed.
All the Senior Brothers seemed to have their eyes on MO Ruyue.
In which aspect did she lose to MO Ruyue? Why was MO Ruyue so lucky?
The more Shen Yunyan thought about it, the angrier she got.
Looking at MO Ruyues back, the corners of her mouth curled into a strange smile.
Soon, the news that the Demon Realm Saintess wanted to snatch the seven-colored fire seed was released.
For a moment, the people from the immortal sects were furious.
What did the Demon Realm need the Seven-Colored Fire Seed for? He was clearly going against everyone.
The seven-colored fire seed was extremely important to the immortal sect, but it was only a fire seed to the demon world.
The Demon Realm had made the immortal sects unhappy for a long time.
Previously, the matter of the Holy Virgin of the Demon World exterminating the entire Jade Pure Immortal Sect had not been resolved. Now, the Holy Virgin of the Demon World actually wanted to snatch the seven-colored fire seed.
Wasnt this a deration of war?
Xuanling immortal sect
Lan Qi did not receive a reply from MO Ruyue. Even the messenger pigeon he sent out did not return.
He didnt know which part of the process had gone wrong.
Could it be that MO Ruyue didnt receive the letter?
Before he could figure out this matter, Lan Qi heard that the Holy Maiden of the Demon World wanted to snatch the seven-colored fire seed.
Upon hearing this news, Lan Qi immediately flew into a rage.
This Demon Realm Saintess is going against the immortal sect, right? She even wants to snatch the seven-colored fire seed!
It was too detestable.
Lan Qi wished he could run to the Demon Realm and kill the Demon Realm Saintess right now.
MO Ruyue is really a good-for-nothing. She hasnt brought back any useful information yet!
It was all information that he had learned from others.
He wondered what MO Ruyue was doing now.
After thinking about it, Lan Qi still sent two disciples to snatch the seven-colored fire seed. He could not let the seven-colored fire seed fall into the hands of the Demon Realm, let alone the other immortal sects.
If their Xuanling Immortal Sect managed to snatch the seven-colored fire seed, he would give it to his master. His master would definitely be happy.
As for MO Ruyue, he felt that MO Ruyue had already be an abandoned pawn. It was time to send someone else to the Devil World to be a spy.
He could also get rid of MO Ruyue.
They did not want to insult the reputation of their Xuanling Immortal Sect.
MO Ruyue and Jing Xichen arrived at a city and stayed in an inn.
While they were eating, the people around them were discussing animatedly.
l heard that the Demon Realm Saintess wants to snatch the seven-colored fire seed. Is this true or false?
What does it have to do with us peasants?
Hey, you cant say that. My son is a disciple of the Misty Immortal Sect. I heard that the Seven-colored Fire Seed is very useful to the Immortal Sect. Its useless for the Demon Realm to take the Seven-colored Fire Seed. This Saintess of the Demon Realm wants to snatch the Seven-colored Fire Seed.
Isnt this clearly going against the Immortal Sect?
Although what you said makes sense, Im not interested in these things. It doesnt matter if its the Demon Realm or the Immortal Sect.
Youre really boring. If 1 meet that Devil World Saintess, Ill kill her with my life.
MO Ruyue and Jing Xichen looked at each other in silence.
They had only been out for a short while, but the news was faster than them.
It was truly shocking!
MO Ruyue looked depressed. Had she done something that would infuriate both men and gods? These people wanted to kill her?
Fortunately, she had already put away the Saintess Token. If people knew that she was the Saintess of the Demon World, her current situation would be very dangerous..
Chapter 661 - 661: The Devil is the Villain
Chapter 661: The Devil is the Viin
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After the meal, MO Ruyue hurried back to her room. She felt that it would not be easy to find the seven-colored fire seed this time.
Jing Xichen saw that MO Ruyues expression wasnt right, so he hurried over to ask about her.
Dont mind those peoples words too much. Their strength is not evenparable to a disciple of the Demon Realm who does odd jobs.
He had just gone out to do a mission, so he didnt want to be scared.
l know, but I think we should keep a low profile. The news has already spread before they even came out.
It wasparable to the speed of modern media.
MO Ruyue didnt want to get into trouble before she even finished her mission.
She wanted to be fearless and kill anyone who stood in her way, but she had to have the strength to do so. If she didnt have the strength and still acted arrogantly, wouldnt she be cannon fodder?
For now, she had to hide well. It would not be toote to be arrogant when she had the strength one day.
Jing Xichen understood MO Yues thoughts and smiled faintly. I didnt expect Junior Sister Sister to be so timid. Youve brought out the momentum you used to beat up the Jade Pure Immortal School.
He seemed to have learned a little more about MO Ruyue.
The strength of the people from the Jade Pure Immortal Sect is average, but there are all kinds of people out there. I dont dare to be arrogant. If Im targeted by a powerful big shot, Ill be in trouble.
MO Ruyue was neither timid nor cowardly. She felt that this was called self-awareness.
Her mission was to find the Seven-Colored Fire Seed, not to fight with others.
Alright, well listen to Junior Sister. Lets keep a low profile.
Then Junior Sister, rest early. We will continue our journey tomorrow. MO Ruyue nodded heavily. Yes, Senior Brother should rest early. After Jing Xichen left, he closed the door to MO Ruyues room.
He hoped that the rest of the journey would be smooth sailing.
When Jing Xichen returned to his room, the smile on his face had long disappeared. It was as if he had removed his disguise and his expression was extremely cold.
The excruciating pain made his face pale. He quickly closed the door and pressed his back against the door.
Damn it!
He cursed in a low voice and quickly took out a red pill and swallowed it. It slowly calmed his breathing and the heart-wrenching pain slowly eased.
His tightly knitted brows slowly rxed.
Every time his body acted up, the hatred in his heart grew stronger.
The next day, MO Ruyue drew a tuft of mustache on her face to conceal her identity.
The easiest way to avoid being discovered was to disguise as a man.
But when Jing Xichen saw MO Ruyue, he frowned slightly and asked,Why did you draw a beard?
As he spoke, he reached out and wiped the mustache that MO Ruyue had drawn.
MO Ruyue had no time to stop him.
MO Ruyue only felt that Jing Xichens hand was especially warm, and she did not dare to breathe too loudly.
Jing Xichen looked at MO Yues frightened expression and a faint smile appeared in his eyes.
When he touched her skin, he could feel how soft it was.
l want to dress up as a man. The Holy Maiden wont be a man so that no one will suspect me.
This method was definitely smart.
However, Jing Xichen wiped her beard.
Upon hearing MO Ruyues words, Jing Xichen couldnt help butugh.
Is it funny?
MO Ruyue was puzzled. What was so funny about this?
Jing Xichensughing point was unusually low.
Jing Xichen clenched his fists and coughed lightly. He said seriously,How many men in the world are as fair and tender as you? Also, arent your chest muscles too exaggerated? Isnt your waist too slender? Isnt your butt a little too perky?
He raised his eyebrows and sized up MO Ruyue.
How blind would others be to not recognize that this was a woman disguised as a man?
If she were to cross-dress like this, it might backfire and people might suspect that she was the Holy Maiden.
MO Ruyue felt a little ashamed at Jing Xichens words. She looked down at her chest and sighed inwardly.
Her chest was already constricted, and her breathing was already a little uneven. If it was any tighter, she would have suffocated.
Is it obvious?
MO Ruyue asked in a low voice and touched her waist. Instead of dressing up as a man, its better to wear a mask. Isnt wearing a mask better than dressing up as a man? MO Ruyue nodded solemnly. I think Senior Brother is right. Then I have to go out and buy a mask!
l have some here. You dont have to go out and sell masks.
As he spoke, Jing Xichen took out a silver mask from his storage ring.
He handed the silver mask to MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue took a look at the mask and then nced at the storage ring on Jing Xichens finger. This ring couldnt be bought without a hundred thousand taels.
Jing Xichen was quite rich. When would she get a storage ring?
He put on the mask and turned to look at Jing Xichen.The mask seems a little big, but it doesnt affect me much.
Jing Xichen nced at MO Ruyue. Lets go. Lets continue our journey.
Alright.
MO Ruyue followed closely behind.
In less than two days, they arrived at Dongli. The capital city of Dongli was particrly lively, and MO Ruyues attention was immediately drawn to it.
Seeing the curiosity in MO Ruyues eyes, Jing Xichen dismounted and said,Lets go. There are many people here, so its not suitable for riding horses.
MO Ruyue had the same thought. She dismounted and looked around. She had never seen such a bustling city since she came to this world.
Previously, he had only been in the immortal sect, isted from the world.
Later, when he went to the Demon Realm, he could not leave at will. Even if he left, he would go on a mission. He did not have time to wander around.
Everything here seemed particrly intimate.
Get out of the way, dont block our misss path.
A voice rang out from the crowd.
The street was already crowded, but there were still people pushing and shoving. The elderly and children were pushed down.
The cries of children and the curses of the people could be heard.
MO Ruyue and Jing Xichen were naturally pushed to the side.
MO Ruyue had seen this kind of tyrannical and barbaric scene on television before. She couldnt help but sigh.l wonder which familys unruly and domineering young miss hase out to parade on the streets.
Isnt this power almostparable to the power of a princess when she goes out?
MO Ruyue crossed her arms and stood by the roadside, looking at the bridal sedan slowly approaching from afar.
Jing Xichen raised his chin and said with a dark expression,The young miss of the prime ministers residence is indeed unruly and domineering.
Senior Brother, do you know him?
MO Ruyue turned her head and nced at Jing Xichen.
It seemed that Jing Xichen knew this youngdy.
Ive heard that this youngdy is also an outer sect disciple of Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Jing Xichens tone carried a hint of disdain.
Xuanling Immortal Sect was considered the number one enemy of the Demon Realm.
MO Ruyues expression froze as she silently retracted her gaze. She really didnt know that Xuanling Immortal Sect had an outer sect disciple.
In the past, when he was in Xuanling Immortal Sect, he had always felt that Xuanling Immortal Sect was a righteous sect and the Demon World was a viin.
But after entering the demon world, 1 found that this world is not ck or white.
Righteous people were not as good as they thought, and viins were not as bad as they thought.
At least, the people MO Ruyue came into contact with were not bloodthirsty. Everything happened because of karma.
If he got to the bottom of it, nothing would happen if he did not provoke the Demon Realm.
A luxurious carriage came over. There was a woman sitting in the carriage. The woman had exquisite makeup and wore a red veil.
MO Ruyue and Jing Xichen watched the carriage pass by. Only when the carriage was far away could everyone walk freely on the road..
Chapter 662 - 662: Seizing the Seven-Colored Fire Seed
Chapter 662: Seizing the Seven-Colored Fire Seed
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Lets go. Well be there soon.
Jing Xichen continued to lead MO Ruyue forward.
MO Ruyue looked away from the carriage and said casually, Is it appropriate for a Prime Minister to have such a grand disy of power?
This scene wasparable to a princess going out.
Junior sister might not know, but this prime ministers daughter once saved the emperor. The emperor took the prime ministers daughter as his adopted daughter, so she can be considered half a princess.
Jing Xichen exined slowly. The two of them turned into a street that was not very lively. The street was filled with the fragrance of cosmetics.
MO Ruyue didnt pay attention to what Jing Xichen said. Instead, she looked up at the brothel in front of her and stammered, This isXunhuan Brothel?
It was a ce for men to seek pleasure in ancient times.
She turned around and leaned against Jing Xichen.
Yes.
Jing Xichen responded and saw two coachmen walking over.
After confirming the secret signal, the coachman took the horse from their hands.
This is the back door of the Xunhuan Building. Lets go in first.
Jing Xichen walked inside. MO Ruyue took off her mask and followed closely behind Jing Xichen.
She finally knew what this ce was. On the surface, it was a flower house, but in fact, it was an intelligence gathering point ced here by the Demon Realm.
MO Ruyue restrained her surprise. She was about to see the rumored Baili Xi. She followed Jing Xichen to a quiet room, and the servants hurried in to make tea.
Not long after, Baili Xijian came in from outside.
A handsome man dressed in white walked in.
A pair of clear eyes with deep eyes, thin lips slightly pursed, and a high nose bridge that entuated his facial features.
The lines on his face were less fierce and more gentle.
There was a jade flute on his waist, and he seemed to be proficient in the flute.
It was MO Ruyues first time sizing up Baili Xi from such a close distance.
Baili Xi gave off an easy-going feeling, and his entire body exuded an elegant and gentle temperament.
Senior Brother.
Jing Xichen shouted with a smile on his face.
Baili Xijian nodded slightly, then turned his gaze to MO Ruyue and said,This is Seventh Sister MO Ruyue?
She was also the only Saintess left behind by the Demon Lord.
He remembered that Seventh Junior Sister had a very serious scar on her face, but it had disappeared now.
Her appearance was beautiful and moving.
Greetings, Second Senior Brother.
MO Ruyue called out to Baili Xijian, who looked like a gentle big brother, but did not have the slightest bit of aura of the Demon Realm.
Baili Xijian smiled, revealing his bright white teeth. His smile seemed to be able to melt the cold snow.
She looked good when she smiled.
Why did youe to look for me this time?
Baili Xi saw that he was getting straight to the point and did not beat around
the bush.
She was a little surprised to see Jing Xichen.
There were only the three of them in the room. Jing Xichen asked directly,Senior Brother, do you have any news about the seven-colored fire seed?
Seven-colored fire seed?
Baili Xijian looked at Jing Xichen in confusion and continued,Why are you asking about the Seven-Colored Fire Seed? You dont need the Seven-Colored Fire Seed.
The seven-colored fire seed was more attractive to those immortal sects and cultivators.
What could the people of the Demon Realm do with the seven-colored fire seed?
Alchemy?
No one in the Demon Realm had ever refined pills.
Therefore, Baili Xi couldnt understand.
Obtaining the seven-colored fire seed was the mission given to me by the Demon Lord, but I dont know where the seven-colored fire seed is, so I came here with Fourth Brother to ask Second Brother to see if I can get any clues. MO Ruyue said sincerely.
Otherwise, she didnt know when she would be able toplete the mission that the Demon Lord had given her.
The demon didnt set a time limit for her toplete the mission, but she felt that the sooner the mission waspleted, the better.
Jing Xichen also said, Second Senior Brother, you should have some clues, right?
That pair of fox-like eyes seemed to be able to see through everything.
Second Senior Brother knew a lot of things. There was absolutely nothing wrong withing here.
Bai Lixi hesitated for a moment and slowly do have some clues here. Youvee to the right ce, but Im afraid it wont be easy to obtain the seven-colored fire seed.
Senior Martial Brother, please tell me where the Seven Colored Fire Seed is. I will find a way to get it.
MO Ruyue stared at Baili Xijian, her beautiful eyes full of expectation.
Second Senior Brother was really too awesome. He actually had clues about the seven-colored fire seed.
Jing Xichen also stared at Baili Xijian without blinking, waiting for an answer.
ording to thetest news, the Seven-Colored Fire Seed is in the Imperial
City of Dongli.
Baili Xi saw that he didnt hide anything from his own people.
He generously told MO Ruyue about the whereabouts of the Seven-colored Fire Seed, but whether or not he could get the Seven-colored Fire Seed would depend on MO Ruyues strength.
In the Imperial City?
MO Ruyue said excitedly.
Bai Lixi saw his slender fingers tapping on the table and continued, The
Seven-Colored Fire Seed was presented to the Emperor as a tribute. The
Emperor then bestowed the Seven-Colored Fire Seed to the daughter of the Prime Ministers Estate.
So, the seven-colored fire seed is in the hands of the daughter of the Prime Minister!
MO Ruyue recalled the woman she saw outside earlier. Although she was wearing a veil, she did not feel easy to get along with.
Yes, the Seven-Colored Fire Seed is in the hands of Wei Hongmei, the daughter of the Prime Ministers Estate. Not many people know about this.
Baili Xijian had a meaningful smile on his face.
Very few people knew about this news. Everyone thought that the seven-colored fire seed was somewhere else.
Wei Hongmei is not easy to get close to. How did you get the seven-colored fire seed from her?
Other than the Dongli Imperial Family, Wei Hongmei also had Xuanling Immortal Sect backing her.
He started to worry for MO Ruyue.
Seizing the seven-colored fire seed was neither difficult nor easy.
MO Ruyue stroked her chin and said,Could it be that only Wei Hongmei has the Seven-Colored Fire Seed?
This matter was really not easy to handle.
Of course, its not only Wei Hongmei who has it. Its just that the other seven-colored fire seeds are harder to obtain.
Baili Xijian raised his chin. With MO Ruyues strength, it would definitely be difficult for her to find other seven-colored fire seeds.
MO Ruyue looked at Baili Xijian with a grave expression and said,Senior Brother, please point me in the right direction?
The seven-colored fire seed is born on theva of volcanoes. It can only be formed by luck. Some can only form a seven-colored fire seed once every hundred years, while others can only form a seven-colored fire seed once every thousand years. Moreover, the temperature of the crater is too high. Ordinary people will turn into ashes before they can get close.
It was useless to point out the way. It was too dangerous.
Instead of going to the crater, he would rather think of a way to get the Seven-Colored Fire Seed from Wei Hongmei.
This thing was originally snatched from someone elses hands and fell into Wei Hongmeis hands.
After listening to Baili Xijians exnation, MO Ruyue felt that it was even more hopeless to look for the other Seven-colored Fire Seed. Right now, snatching the Seven-colored Fire Seed from Wei Hongmeis hands was the safest method.
Looks like I can only snatch the Seven-Colored Fire Seed from Wei Hongmei.
MO Ruyues pupils shrank. She had to think of a better way.
He definitely couldnt snatch it openly.
If they couldnt do it openly, they could only do it in the dark.
At this moment, Jing Xichen stood up and said, Dont think about the mission first. The mission will bepleted sooner orter. Its rare for you toe out. Go outside and rx.
Baili Xijian also agreed. Thats right. Go out and have fun. During this period of time, we just happened to catch up with the parade in Dongli Country. There are many interesting things outside..
Chapter 663 - 663: Punished by the Heavens
Chapter 663 - 663: Punished by the Heavens
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Seeing her two Senior Brothers like this, MO Ruyue could only put the mission aside and think about how to get close to Wei Hongmei.
Knowing oneself and knowing the enemy would win every battle. She had to secretly observe Wei Hongmei.
Junior sister Ruyue, how about I let Xunyang take you out for a stroll?
No need, no need. Ill just go out and walk around by myself.
MO Ruyue waved her hand and walked out tactfully. Baili Xi saw that he had something to say to Jing Xichen, and he did not want her to know. Perhaps, in Senior Brothers eyes, she was still an outsider.
MO Ruyue walked outside. She wasnt wearing a mask.
As long as she did not say anything, no one would know that she was the saintess of the demon world.
Now that she knew the clues to the seven-colored fire seed, she had to rely on her own strength to obtain the seven-colored fire seed.
She couldnt rely on others to help her. It was her duty to help others. She had no right to ask others to help her.
He still had to walk the rest of the road by himself.
Just as she was thinking, a woman suddenly bumped into her. Perhaps her body was more tough, but the woman who bumped into her was bounced to the ground.
Junior Sister, Junior Sister, are you alright?
A man helped the woman up from the ground.
After the woman got up, she said to the man beside her aggrievedly,Senior
Brother, she knocked me down. It hurts.
Where does it hurt? Ill give you a massage.
The mans face was filled with heartache.
The womans face was slightly red as she whispered, There are many people here, so its not convenient for me to say where it hurts.
The man instantly understood what the woman meant.
Dont be afraid, Senior Brother will help you.
Then, the man said fiercely to MO you blind? You actually knocked my junior sister down. Hurry up and apologize to my junior sister! If you dont apologize, dont even think about leaving here.
The man raised his head and looked at the woman in ck, his face showing displeasure.
However, the woman in front of him was quite good-looking. She was actually more beautiful than his junior sister.
He vaguely felt that this woman looked a little familiar.
However, he could not remember where he had seen it before. Perhaps it was just his imagination.
The woman looked at MO Ruyue and subconsciously grabbed Senior Brother Mo s arm.
The woman in front of her was prettier than her. She was afraid that her senior brother would be seduced by this woman.
She was so good-looking, and she was obviously a vixen who only knew how to seduce men.
The woman thought to herself.
At this moment, MO Ruyue felt her scalp go numb. She knew the man in front of her. He was Xuanling Immortal Sects Sixth Senior Brother, and his name was Ye Xiong or something.
Ye Xiong called that woman junior sister. Could it be that her position in Profound Spirit Immortal Sect had already been reced?
There was no junior sister behind her previously.
Youre not talking? Are you mute?
Ye Xiong said impatiently. If this woman was not good-looking, he would have pped her long ago.
Hurry up and apologize to my junior sister. Otherwise, Ill teach you a lesson!
Ye Xiong continued. What was with the look in this womans eyes?
It felt weird.
Apologize to me. Dont think that youll be fine just because you hit someone.
The woman refused to let him go. She wanted to make this woman apologize to her in front of so many people today.
She was not someone to be bullied.
Seeing that Ye Xiong did not recognize her, MO Ruyue slowly heaved a sigh of relief.
Before the mysterious and spiritual immortal door, she followed those senior brothers, the rtionship was also not deep, because the scar on the face has always been despised.
Therefore, the scar was gone now, and the senior brothers in the past did not recognize him.
He just didnt know why Ye Xiong came to Dongli.
You were the one who bumped into me. 1 didnt say anything. Why should I apologize? You should be the one apologizing.
MO Ruyue quietly opened her mouth and looked at the couple in front of her.
When the woman heard MO Ruyues words, it was as if she had heard a joke. She sneered and apologize to you? Why should I apologize to you? I was the one who fell to the ground!
You hit the wall, and you dont me yourself for being blind.
MO Ruyue snapped. She was the one who bumped into him, and now he wanted her to apologize?
What kind of joke was this? She would never apologize to this woman.
Youre weak and youre reasonable, but that wont work on me.
MO Ruyue sneered.
If she did something wrong, she would apologize. If she didnt do anything wrong, she wouldnt apologize.
Senior Brother, look at this woman. Shes unruly and rude. She clearly knocked me down, but she still has an innocent expression on her face. Senior
Brother, I feel so wronged.
As she spoke, the woman started to cry.
Ye Xiongs heart ached when he heard the woman cry. He pointed at MO Ruyue and said,lf you dont apologize, dont me me for being impolite.
The people around them also started to cheer,Miss, just apologize to him. Its better to avoid trouble.
Although they were on MO Ruyues side, they felt that there was no need for a girl to get into a conflict with others. Otherwise, they would be the ones at a disadvantage.
Everyone knew that MO Ruyue was not at fault.
The man and woman looked like they wanted to apologize. It was better to turn the matter into a small matter.
In case he suffered a loss.
MO Ruyue shot a nce at the surroundingmoners before her gaze fell on
Ye Xiong and the woman.You two are senior brothers, right?
Were martial siblings. What does this have to do with you?
The woman blocked Ye Xiong behind her, afraid that this woman would seduce her Senior Brother.
MO Ruyue raised her chin slightly and deliberately asked, Which immortal sect are you from?
The woman was about to say something when Ye Xiong stopped her. He scolded, Youre just an ordinary woman. Dont ask too much about the matters of the immortal sect. Since you know that were from the immortal sect, then apologize. Otherwise, Ill make you suffer!
The more he looked at the woman in front of him, the weirder she became. She actually knew that they were from the immortal sect.
At least this woman had some foresight.
You forced me to apologize. I can apologize, but she will definitely be punished by the heavens!
It seemed like the Heavenly Retribution Experience Card had not expired yet.
Since this woman wanted to experience the Divine Wrath Body, he would let her experience it properly.
Hahaha, I will be punished by the heavens. What a joke. How can I be punished by the heavens?
The womanughed loudly and did not care.
Did this woman really think of herself as the Heavenly Dao? She actually said that the heavens would punish her.
Ye Xiong naturally did not believe MO Ruyues words and said impatiently,Hurry up and apologize.
MO Ruyues lips curled up. She had never seen anyone so eager.
Im sorry, miss.
l cant hear you!
The woman acted as if she was deaf. She did it on purpose.
He wanted to tease the woman in front of him.
She would make this woman in front of her regret being stubborn.
She didnt even have a man by her side. She really took herself seriously.
With a loud rumble, a bolt of lightning streaked across the sky and struck the woman beside Ye Xiong.
Even though the lightning had a wide range, it only affected women.
The others were stunned. The lightning had actually struck that woman.
Everyone did not know what to say, or rather, they were all scared silly..
Chapter 664 - 664: An Indisputable Truth
Chapter 664 - 664: An Indisputable Truth
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue smiled at the woman. So the sound is so loud, the sound is now clear, right?
The woman fell to the ground with smokeing out of her body, causing her to temporarily lose her senses.
Ye Xiong looked at the beautiful woman in front of him warily. He felt that this woman was extremely dangerous.
Because of this woman, Little Junior Sister was struck by lightning.
l said, dont use me and make me apologize. Youve got your retribution, right?
MO Ruyue said with a look of ease.
After saying that, he left in everyones shock. Can that woman summon lightning?
Is that woman a god?
How can he be a god? He looks quite ordinary.
But that woman summoned lightning and struck another woman.
The woman who was struck by lightning has done too many heartless things, so she received retribution from the heavens.
Actually, from the beginning, I thought that evil woman was arrogant and domineering.
Thats right, thats right. I also feel that she knocked into someone else and asked them to apologize to her.
Everyone thought that it was the woman who had been struck by lightning.
One by one, they started discussing after the fact.
In fact, MO Ruyue had not gone far, but was hiding in the dark.
Ye Xiong and that woman must havee to Dongli for some reason.
He had also stayed in Xuanling Immortal Sect for some time, so he naturally knew some internal information about Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Ye Xiong picked up the woman and walked towards the clinic.
It didnt take long for the woman to wake uppletely. She had a pained expression on her face as she shouted that her entire body was in pain.
Senior Brother, it hurts.
Dont be afraid. Senior Brother is here.
That woman must have some yao arts. Shixiong, you have to help me take revenge.
Alright, alright, alright. Revenge, revenge.
Ye Xiong caught up to him and agreed. However, he was thinking about how he was going to take revenge. The other partys strength was unfathomable, and he did not want to lose his life for nothing.
However, in order to win his junior sisters favor, he could only pretend to agree.
With Ye Xiongs assurance, the woman slowly shut her mouth.
After returning to the inn from the clinic, Ye Xiong ced the woman on the couch and prepared to leave.
Senior Brother.
The woman called out to Ye Xiong.
Ye Xiong heard the womans voice and turned around with a puzzled expression.
He stopped in his tracks and turned around to look at the woman. He asked with a smile, Junior Sister, whats wrong?
Senior Brother, Im afraid of the dark at night. Can you stay here and sleep with me tonight?
The woman bit her bright red lips and winked at Ye Xiong. She did not want to stay in the room alone.
Ye Xiong was in a difficult position, but when he saw the womans pitiful look, he still felt a little soft-hearted.
He immediately agreed.
Nio Ruyue was currently on the roof, silently watching everything.
She only looked away after Ye Xiong and the woman blew out the cigarette.
The scene below really couldnt be seen.
He didnt expect Ye Xiong to hook up with his Junior Sister. Were they out for a date?
After all, one couldnt date openly in the Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Therefore, it was not easy for them to rush to Dongli for a date.
For example, she was very, very normal. She came out to do missions.
Seeing that there were no clues, MO Ruyue prepared to leave.
A muffled groan was heard from inside the room. Then, a womans voice sounded. Senior Brother, are you okay?
Mm, its alright. Junior Sister, Ill be by your side in the future.
Ye Xiongy on the soft bed, closed his eyes, and took a deep breath. MO Ruyue, who was listening from the corner of the room, twitched her Hearing Ye Xiongs voice, the woman was a little unhappy.
She tidied her clothes and said slowly,Senior Brother, can we find the
Seven-Colored Fire Seed earlier and return to the Celestial Sect to hand in the mission?
Aiya, Junior Sister, dont be in a hurry to go back. Eldest Senior Brother sent us out to look for the fire seed, but he didnt tell us when to go back. We can stay outside for a few more days.
Ye Xiong didnt want to go back too early.
The woman hadpletely lost interest in Ye Xiong. She could not continue to follow Ye Xiong on her next mission.
Moreover, we dont even know where the Seven-Colored Fire Seed is now, nor do we have any clues. We have no way to start looking for it. Why dont we wait for the event in Dongli to end before continuing to look for the
Seven-Colored Fire Seed?
Ye Xiong whispered into the womans ear, persuading her to stay for a few more days.
The womans mind was in turmoil. She sighed and Ill listen to
Senior Brother.
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes. These two people actually didnt know that the Seven-Colored Fire Seed was in Wei Hongmeis hands.
She left quietly, a n already in her mind.
When she returned to the Xunhuan Building, Jing Xichen sized up the woman in front of her.
MO Ruyue felt uneasy.
Jing Xichen smiled faintly and said,Junior Sister, where did you go? Why did youe back sote?
MO Ruyue was conflicted about whether to tell Jing Xichen about Ye Xiong.
Junior Sister, youre absent-minded and in a bad mood?
Seeing that MO Ruyue had not said anything, a hint of worry shed in the depths of Jing Xichens eyes.
He raised his hand and gently rubbed MO Ruyues head.
No, I met two unreasonable people when I went out to y in the country and ruined my mood.
MO Ruyue was not used to being rubbed on the head. It felt like teasing a little pet.
She tilted her head without batting an eyelid, but it seemed to be useless.
Jing Xichens expression turned cold when he heard MO Ruyues words.
Who dares to disturb my junior sisters mood? Do they want to die?
Tell senior brother who they are.
Jing Xichen grabbed MO Ruyues hand as he spoke, as if he wanted to seek justice for MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue grabbed onto his arm and stopped him.No need, no need. Its just a small conflict. Theyre from the immortal sect.
Which immortal sect?
Jing Xichen let go of MO Ruyues hand with a puzzled expression.
Which immortal sect did Junior Sister meet?
This was something he was more curious about.
l dont know which sect theyre from. I followed them for a while and found out that theyre also here for the Seven-Colored Fire Seed, but they dont seem to know where it is.
MO Ruyue said solemnly. She did not tell Jing Xichen that she had met Ye Xiong from Xuanling Immortal Sect.
She was afraid that Jing Xichen would suspect her if she said too much.
Although she was now prepared to follow the demon world, it was an indisputable fact that she was a spy.
If she was discovered, she would be finished.
They are actually also here for the seven-colored fire seed
Jing Xichens eyes narrowed.
Senior Brother, MO Ruyue hurriedly said, Ive thought of an idea. Im not sure if itll work. Senior Brother, please help me figure it out.
In order to prevent Jing Xichen from thinking carefully, MO Ruyue quickly said something to divert Jing Xichens attention.
He was afraid that Jing Xichen would notice something. Oh? Does Junior Sister already have a solution?
Jing Xichen looked at MO Ruyue in confusion and surprise.
He didnt expect that his junior sister already had a solution.
Can we reveal the news that Wei Hongmei has the Seven-Colored Fire Seed and let others snatch it? Lets use the mantis stalks the cicada, unaware of the oriole behind.
She didnt know if her method was good, but it must be useful..
Chapter 665 - 665: Everything is within the Plan
Chapter 665 - 665: Everything is within the n
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Wei Hongmei was an outer sect disciple of Xuanling Immortal Sect. If she knew that the immortal sect also wanted the Seven-Colored Fire Seed, she might give it to Ye Xiong directly.
At that time, it would be even more convenient to snatch the Seven-Colored Fire Seed from Ye Xiong.
Jing Xichens eyes were deep, and he felt that the eyes of the woman in front of him were filled with excitement and wisdom.
He thought about MO Ruyues method and slowly said, Junior Sisters method is indeed not bad.
After saying that, he paused.
Then Jing Xichen continued, However, once this news spreads, there will be more immortal sects and forces eyeing the seven-colored fire seed, so there will be more opponents.
The oriole was behind, and he did not know who was the real oriole.
What Senior Brother said is not without reason, but I think we should still take the risk and give it a try.
MO Ruyue agreed with Jing Xichen, but they had no other way.
Most importantly, she knew that Ye Xiong was from the Profound Spirit Immortal Sect, so the possibility of Ye Xiong obtaining the Seven-Colored Fire Seed was higher.
MO Ruyue would not casually reveal this to Jing Xichen. Alright, although its not the best of both worlds, its indeed a good idea. Seeing MO Ruyues insistence, Jing Xichen could only agree.
This was the best solution that could be implemented before the best solution.
MO Ruyue yawned and said, Senior Brother, you should rest early. Im going to bed too.
Okay, go ahead.
Jing Xichen watched MO Ruyue enter the room with a smile in his eyes.
The smile in Jing Xichens eyes slowly faded when MO Ruyues back disappeared.
The next day, MO Ruyue went to find Second Senior Brother and told him about her n.
Second Brother agreed to release the news.
In an instant, everyone knew that was in Wei Hongmeis hands.
When the other immortal sects heard Wei Hongmeis name, they all revealed
difficult expressions.
Wei Hongmei was backed by the imperial government and Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Xuanling Immortal Sect was the leader of all immortal sects.
When Ye Xiong heard that Wei Hongmei was holding the Rainbow Fire Seed, he immediately pped his thigh in joy.
Junior Niartial Sister, we really came to the right ce. It didnt take much effort to find this ce.
Ye Xiongs face was filled with pride, and his happiness was not expressed in words.
This time, it was really a blind cat that had run into a dead mouse.
Little Junior Sister did not look happy when she heard Ye Xiongs words. Instead, she looked worried.
Will Wei Hongmei let us bring the seven-colored fire seed back to Xuanling Immortal Sect?
She felt that things werent that simple.
Ye Xiong said confidently, Dont worry, Wei Hongmei will agree unless she doesnt want to have anything to do with Xuanling Immortal Sect. If she does, then Wei Hongmei will be the one to lose, not us.
The woman felt relieved when she heard Ye Xiongs words.
Then when should we go to Wei Hongmei and ask for the Seven-Colored Fire
Seed? The sooner we get the Seven-Colored Fire Seed, the better.
She didnt want to stay outside with Ye Xiong anymore.
This Ye Xiong had muscles all over his body, but in the end, he was a Squib.
She felt nothing when she was with Ye Xiong, so she might as well go back.
Theres no time to lose. Lets go find Wei Hongmei now.
Alright.
Hence, the two of them decided to go to Wei Hongmei.
They did not realize that there was a figure behind them.
MO Ruyue had been secretly observing Ye Xiong.
As expected, this guy went to look for Wei Hongmei. Everything was within her n.
Suddenly, a hand appeared on MO Ruyues shoulder, and a deep and pleasant voice rang in her ear. Junior Sister, what are you looking at?
Jing Xichen had appeared behind MO Ruyue out of nowhere, scaring her so much that her heart skipped a beat.
She turned back to look at Jing Xichen and swallowed. Senior Brother, why are vou so elusive?
Junior Sister, are you scared?
A little.
MO Ruyue spoke casually and quickly calmed down.
Junior Sister, what are you looking at here?
Jing Xichen had already noticed everything, so he asked the obvious.
MO Ruyue stared at the entrance of the Prime Ministers Estate. The two people I met yesterday entered the Prime Ministers Estate. I suspect that they know Wei Hongmei. Wei Hongmei is an outer sect disciple of Xuanling Immortal Sect. From this, we can conclude that those two fellows might also be from Xuanling Immortal Sect.
She casually said that she knew Ye Xiong and deduced it herself.
It was mainly to clear his name.
Jing Xichen looked at MO Ruyues beautiful and exquisite side profile, his eyes flickering. Really?
When he got close to MO Ruyue, he could smell a faint fragrance that prated deep into his lungs.
Im guessing, but Im not sure if its true.
MO Ruyues heart skipped a beat when she heard the doubt in Jing Xichens voice.
Not long after, Ye Xiong and his junior sister came out of the Prime Ministers residence. Ye Xiong held a bundle in his hand and looked very happy. They have the Seven-Colored Fire Seed! Should we attack now?
Jing Xichen seemed to have guessed it as well.
Ye Xiong and his Junior Sister went straight to the inn. They were going to pack up their things and return.
Junior Sister, why dont we stay here for two more days?
The moment they returned to the inn, Ye Xiong hugged his Little Junior Sister and nibbled on her ear.
MO Ruyue and Jing Xichen were watching everything from the roof.
Seeing Ye Xiongs behavior, MO Ruyue raised her head in embarrassment and met Jing Xichens eyes.
The two of them did not speak, but they could feel the awkwardness in each others eyes.
Little Junior Sister pushed Ye Xiong away. She could no longer tolerate this useless man.
With a fake smile on his face, he said, Lets go back as soon as possible. The seven-colored fire seed is quite dangerous in our hands.
What are you afraid of? Who else can snatch the Seven-Colored Fire Seed
from my hands?
Ye Xiong was not worried that someone would steal the Seven-Colored Fire Seed.
Because he had already arranged the seven-colored fire seed properly, he would definitely not let anyone snatch it away.
Little Junior Sister was displeased and insisted,If you dont want to go back, then Ill go back first. If you want to stay here, then you can continue to stay. She did not want to apany him anymore.
Ye Xiong saw that his Junior Sister was determined to go back, so he quickly said, Alright, alright. Pack your things and go back.
He didnt know what was wrong with Little Junior Sister. She was so cold and hot to him.
He was so powerful, how could Little Junior Sister be dissatisfied with him?
The two of them packed their things and left. Lets keep up, MO Ruyue said to Jing Xichen.
Why dont we just do it directly?
Jing Xichen asked softly.
He felt that this junior sister in front of him was very cautious in doing things.
MO Ruyue put on her mask and lowered her voice. No, there are too many people here. We dont even know how many of them are here for the
Seven-colored Fire Seed. Well only expose ourselves if we attack like this.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Jing Xichen smiled with a hint of disbelief in his foxy eyes.
Alright then, Junior Sister, well do it whenever you say so.
He wanted to see what kind of surprise this quick-witted junior sister would bring.
Hence, the two of them followed behind Ye Xiong and the others.
Outside the city, a group of men in ck stopped Ye Xiong and his junior sister.
Look, someone attacked before us.
In the dark, MO Ruyues lips curled into a smug smile.
Everything was within his calctions.
Jing Xichen nced at MO Ruyue with a strange glint in his eyes.
Her body seemed to be emitting a dazzling light..
Chapter 666 - 666: Earning Money
Chapter 666 - 666: Earning Money
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ye Xiong and his junior sister started fighting with the man in ck, but the other party had the advantage in numbers. Ye Xiong was so scared that he threw the box to the other party.
The ck gas man carried the box and left.
Seeing this, Jing Xichen prepared to chase after the men in ck.
However, MO Ruyue quickly grabbed Jing Xichens hand.
Senior Brother, where are you going?
The Seven-Colored Fire Seed was snatched away by those guys! Arent we going to chase after them?
Jing Xichen asked with some doubt. If he didnt chase after those people now, they would be far away.
MO Ruyues fair face carried a faint smile as she said unhurriedly, Senior
Brother, you dont have to be too anxious.
After all, she understood Ye Xiong. That guy always liked to leave a way out for himself.
Jing Xichen was puzzled, but he could only continue to wait when he saw MO Ruyues expression of having everything under control.
Could it be that Junior Sister already had a way to do something else?
He looked at the two people who had been robbed from afar. They did not seem to be sad.
Ye Xiongs lips curled into a smug smile as he scolded in a low voice, Those guys are really a bunch of idiots. They underestimate me, Ye Xiong.
Senior Brother, wheres the Seven-Colored Fire Seed?
Little Junior Sister also knew that the seven-colored fire seed was fake, but she did not know where the real seven-colored fire seed was.
Ye Xiong took out a box from another bag and said,The real Seven-Colored
Fire Seed is in here. Someone is actually thinking about us. Lets go.
Just as the two of them were about to leave, they saw two figures, one red and one ck, appear in front of them and block their way.
Both of them were wearing masks, so their true faces could not be seen. Hand over the Seven-Colored Fire Seed, MO Ruyue said coldly.
Ye Xiong quickly hid the box behind his back and looked at the two people in front of him warily, has been snatched away by someone else. Its not with me!
Its not with you? Then whats the box behind you?
MO Ruyue raised her chin slightly and pointed her sword at Ye Xiong.
Ye Xiongs expression changed and he panicked. Theyre just useless things. Then hand over the useless thing! MO Ruyue improvised.
Of course, Ye Xiong was unwilling to do so, so MO Ruyue and Jing Xichen fought with Ye Xiong. Ye Xiong could beat MO Ruyue, but he was no match for Jing Xichen.
Jing Xichen was at the Foundation Establishment Stage, while Ye Xiong was at the Aura Refining Stage.
Little Junior Sisters cultivation was not as good as MO Ruyues, so MO Ruyue and Jing Xichen got the Seven-colored Fire Seed from Ye Xiong.
He even gave Ye Xiong a violent beating.
Then, the two of them left, leaving behind a bruised Ye Xiong and a trembling Junior Sister.
Dammit, the seven-colored fire seed has been snatched away!
Ye Xiong said hatefully.
Senior Brother, who are those two? How would I know? If only I knew.
Ye Xiong said angrily.
At this moment, MO Ruyue and Jing Xichen had returned to the Xunhuan Building and happened to bump into Baili Xijian.
When Baili Xi saw his gaze fall on the two of them, he smiled and asked,Did you get the Seven-Colored Fire Seed?
Yes, we have the Seven-Colored Fire Seed.
MO Ruyue waved the ss box in her hand. She had already checked it and found that there was indeed a seven-colored fire seed inside.
He didnt expect the first mission to bepleted so easily.
Then congrattions, Junior Sister. You actuallypleted the mission in such a short time.
Baili Xijian congratted sincerely.
He also gained a new understanding of the girl in front of him.
MO Ruyue was a little embarrassed by thepliment and all thanks to Second Senior Brother and Fourth Senior Brother. If it werent for you, I wouldnt have been able toplete the mission so quickly.
She did not know when she would be able toplete the mission by herself.
It would take a long time just to find out the whereabouts of the seven-colored fire seed.
Junior Sister, how should you thank Senior Brother afterpleting the mission?
Jing Xichens face was full of smiles.
Baili Xi nced at Jing Xichen and shook his head helplessly.
Eat and drink, Shixiong can choose.
She still had some money on her, so it was not a problem for her to eat.
Then lets eat.
Alright. MO Ruyue agreed.
After MO Ruyue entered the room, Jing Xichen and Baili Xi nced at each other and left together.
Junior Brother seems to be very interested in Junior Sister?
The current junior sister is impressive, so Im naturally interested.
Jing Xichen smiled and didnt hide it.
Who wouldnt want to get close to that light?
Baili Xijian looked at the sky in silence. People born in the dark yearned for light.
It was not their own idea to enter the demon world, but after bing a member of the demon world, they seemed to have a clearer view of the world.
Jing Xichen turned to look at the silent Baili Xijian and said,Junior Sister is treating us to a meal. Senior Brother, do you want to join us?
l wont eat. You go with Junior Sister. Didnt you suspect Junior Sister before?
Why arent you suspicious now?
Baili Xi was a little surprised by Jing Xichens change.
Previously, Jing Xichen had suspected that MO Ruyue was a spy of the other immortal sects, so he had approached her on his own ord, hoping to discover something.
At this moment, he didnt seem to doubt MO Ruyue anymore.
The smile on Jing Xichens face deepened as he looked at the crowd downstairs with his fox-like eyes. Because Junior Sister snatched the seven-colored fire seed from the Xuanling Immortal Sects disciples today, my opinion of her has changed.
Just because of this?
Baili Xi raised his eyebrows at the sight.
Jing Xichen said calmly, Even if Junior Sister is the spy of other immortal sects, it doesnt matter. When we entered the Demon Realm, we also scoffed at the Demon Realm. But in the end, we still stayed in the Demon Realm without hesitation. Only by standing in this position can we see the others clearly.
Baili Xi didnt refute Jing Xichens words.
They were all saved by the Demon Lord. Although they disdained the Demon World at first, they still stayed in the Demon World in the end.
The Demon Realm that people talked about was not the same as the Demon Realm that they saw.
Not long after, MO Yueyue appeared behind the two of them. Senior Brothers, its almost time for dinner. Lets go eat together. Its my treat.
It was rare for MO Ruyue to be so generous. She didnt have much money to begin with, and she was already generous enough to pay for the meal.
Next, she would rely on her position to earn money.
l wont be going. Theres something important that I need to handle personally. You and Xi Chen go.
When Baili Xi saw her turn around, he spoke with a gentle gaze.
He always gave people a feeling of being bathed in the spring breeze.
It made people inadvertently fall into his gentleness.
She just didnt know if this gentleness was real or fake.
MO Ruyue was toozy to ask for confirmation. After all, she and Baili Xi were just ordinary martial siblings.
When Jing Xichen saw this, he opened his mouth and said,Ruyue, Second Senior Brother doesnt have time. Lets go eat.
Alright then.
MO Ruyue nodded. She had just returned from a robbery. In order not to expose her identity, she had found a set of clothes to change into.
Now, she was dressed like a gentle and beautiful woman. With a little makeup on, she was extremely beautiful.
Being in the Xunhuan Building really made people fantasize.
However, when those men saw Jing Xichen beside MO Ruyue, they did not dare to approach her.
Although the beauty was beautiful, she was already taken.
Mo Ruyue and Jing Xichen left the Xunhuan Building through the back door.
Along the way, many people stared at MO Ruyue..
Chapter 667 - 667: I’ve Taken a fancy to You
Chapter 667 - 667: Ive Taken a fancy to You
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Junior Sister is dressed like a girl.
Jing Xichens words carried a tinge of sourness. MO Ruyue was still the same MO Ruyue from before, but she had changed her outfit and received more attention.
There was a saying that was really good.
MO Ruyue didnt hear the sourness in Jing Xichens words and thought that Jing Xichen was teasing her.
This is my first time wearing this too. I didnt expect it to be so attractive.
This isnt too revealing.
She was just wearing something a little cooler. In modern times, she had also worn short shorts and midriff-baring shirts.
What was the big deal about her clothes revealing her arms and legs? A drunkard suddenly bumped into MO Ruyue and reached out to grab her.
Beauty, a beautiful beauty!
A hint of disgust shed across Jing Xichens eyes. He kicked the drunkard away cleanly.
The drunkard fell to the ground and did not get up.
Seeing this, MO Ruyue quietly put the brick back into her backpack. Lets go, Senior Brother, take me to buy clothes.
Jing Xichen said and was about to take MO Ruyue to buy clothes.
MO Ruyue did not understand. Im fine wearing this.
l dont think so.
Jing Xichen took MO Ruyue!s hand and led her directly to a shop that sold clothes.
MO Ruyue liked sexy clothes because they made her feel better.
However, Jing Xichen only looked at conservative and appropriate styles.
This one.
Jing Xichen immediately took a fancy to a conservative yet beautiful dress.
He had good taste.
Junior Sister would definitely look cute in it.
This
MO Ruyue wanted to refuse, but she found that she was quite pretty, so she swallowed her words.
It was a red and orange dress with water sleeves. It was not too hot to wear in this weather.
When MO Ruyue came out after changing her clothes, Jing Xichens ears turned red. He subconsciously looked away and said, Why dont we change to another one?
Ruyue looked so sexy in such cute clothes.
It was not as good as the one just now. I quite like this one. Senior Brother, you have good taste.
MO Ruyue liked her new clothes very much.
Jing Xichen coughed lightly. Be good, Junior Sister. Change into another one.
This one doesnt suit you.
Senior Brother, I want this one.
This really doesnt suit you. If you insist, then buy another cloak and put it on.
Jing Xichen took a step back.
In this weather, its so hot to wear a cloak. Does Senior Brother think that this cor is too wide?
MO Ruyue asked doubtfully. She looked down and felt that her nose was about to bleed.
She lifted her clothes up and said,Thats good. Raise it up a little.
Jing Xichen turned his back. Junior Sister was really not bothered by trifles.
After living in the Demon Realm for a long time, everyone would be a little careless. He could understand this very well.
Although there were rules in the Demon Realm, they were not as many as the rules in the immortal sects.
If you like it, then buy it.
Jing Xichen couldnt bear to reject MO Ruyue, so he could only agree to let MO Ruyue buy the dress she was wearing.
When MO Ruyue left the clothing store, she received even more attention.
The cor that was originally pulled up fell down a little.
Her previous clothes revealed her arms and legs, but now her clothes revealed her white rabbits.
They arrived at the most luxurious restaurant in the Imperial City and booked a private room. Finally, no one was looking at MO Ruyue anymore.
Senior Brother, wait here. Ill go order.
She had to calcte whether she had enough money to spend. If she didnt have enough money to spend, it would be embarrassing.
Therefore, MO Ruyue hurried downstairs without waiting for Jing Xichen to agree.
There was food and drink in the Demon Realm. She did not need to pay for it, and she still had money every month.
Xuanling Immortal Sect only had five taels of silver a month, while the Demon Realm gave them twenty taels.
The immortal sect made her spy in the demon world and did not give her any benefits. The demon world provided food, drinks, benefits, and generous gifts. How could she bear to continue being a spy and betray the demon world?
The human heart was made of flesh. The Demon Realm had not mistreated her since the beginning.
Nio Ruyues heart had wavered a long time ago. It was just that at that time, he did not think about whether he wanted to stay in the Demon Realm.
Now, she had made her choice.
[Salted Fish System: Congrattions to the host forpleting the mission. You have obtained the permanent card of the heart skill.]
Looking at the system reward, MO Ruyue did not use it immediately. She had to figure out what this card was first.
She only used it after she was sure that it would not affect her greatly. She did not want to catch a de with her bare hands again.
[Salted Fish System: You can use the Heartbeat Skill Card to randomly check the other partys Heartbeat.]
It seemed that there were no other unstable effects, so MO Ruyue dared to use the Heartbeat Skill Card in her hand.
After using it, there seemed to be no effect at all.
Waiter, show me your signature dish.
MO Ruyue didnt think about the question of the [Heartbeat] skill anymore.
Instead, she hurried to look at the dishes.
He had to calcte how many things she could buy with her money.
The waiter immediately started to report the dishs name and the price.
At this moment, a group of people came downstairs. The man in the lead immediately saw the beautiful MO Ruyue.
This youngdy looks familiar.
The man took the initiative to strike up a conversation with MO Ruyue. He sized her up and thought that this woman was of the highest quality.
His frivolous eyes were filled with ill intentions.
MO Ruyue heard the voice and couldnt help but turn to look at the mans familiar face. Mas
Before she could finish her sentence, she stopped abruptly. This man looked exactly like Jing Xichen. They both had fox-like eyes and were equally handsome.
However, Jing Xichen liked to be unrestrained in red, while the man in front of her was dressed in a white brocade robe and exuded a sinister and cunning aura.
Beauty, do you know me? I am the son of the state preceptor, Jing Yuge.
After Jing Yuge finished speaking, he started to touch MO Ruyue, making her feel ufortable.
l dont care who you are. Dont touch me.
MO Ruyue said coldly, then turned to the waiter and said,Waiter, send those signature dishes to the private room on the second floor.
After saying that, MO Ruyue ignored Jing Yuge and prepared to go upstairs.
However, her path was blocked.
What do you want to do?
MO Ruyue felt depressed. Did she get involved in some melodramatic incident?
a rich yboy snatches amoners daughter.
l see that beauty and I are fated. Why dont we meet at my residence?
Jing Yuge liked this beautiful woman very much. Such a beautiful woman should be possessed by him.
Gather your sister. Fate your head. I think its more like an ill-fated fate.
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes at Jing Yuge. She was almost certain that Jing Yuge and Jing Xichen were twins.
Jing Xichen was so upright, but this Jing Yuge was simply the reincarnation of a hooligan.
Jing Yuge became even more excited when he heard the woman rebuke him. His eyes were filled with lust as he said good. Spicy enough to be tasty. This Young Master likes it. Woman, this Young Master likes you.
MO Ruyue sneered and crossed her arms. Are you dreaming? Do I need to piss you up? I cant let you taste any sweetness.
Jing Yuge didnt understand what the woman was saying.
However, he was sure that the woman did not say anything good. He had seen many women who were submissive or took the initiative. This was the first time he saw a woman with such a strong personality. He especially wanted to conquer such a woman..
Chapter 668 - 668: I’m a Good Person
Chapter 668 - 668: Im a Good Person
Bring her back. Its the wedding night.
Jing Yuges face was full of anger, and his expression was a little strange.
MO Ruyue took out a brick and said coldly, Whoever dares toe over, Ill p them.
It was really Jue Juezi. This was the first time he had encountered such a hooligan.
This belongs to daylight robbery
Everyoneughed when they saw MO Ruyue take out a brick.
This woman actually carried bricks with her. What was she trying to do?
Did they think that a brick could deal with them?
The war between the two sides was about to break out.
Jing Xichen, who was on the second floor, had already seen everything. His eyes were fixed on Jing Yuge.
Just as MO Ruyue was about to make a move, Jing Xichen appeared in time. Wearing a mask, he flew downstairs, grabbed MO Ruyues slender waist, and ran outside with her.
In the blink of an eye, MO Ruyue and Jing Xichen disappeared from Jing Yuges
What are you waiting for? Hurry up and chase after him!
Jing Yuge shouted.
The group of people left the restaurant in a hurry. When they left, the two figures had already disappeared without a trace.
You bunch of useless trash, you let him escape.
Jing Yuge berated him coldly. Did he raise a bunch of good-for-nothings? They didnt have the ability to react at all.
He was so angry that he kicked one of his subordinates.
His entire body was filled with terrifying anger.
The subordinates lowered their heads in fear, but they did not dare to say anything.
The other party ran so fast that they really had no way of catching up.
Jing Xichen let go of MO Ruyue and took off his mask. Are you alright? he asked with concern.
He checked MO Ru Yues body with his eyes.
Im fine.
MO Ruyue shook her head and looked behind her.
Those people shouldnt have chased after them.
She looked deeply at Jing Xichen and said slowly,The guy just now is called Jing Yuge, and he looks exactly like you, Senior Brother. I almost got the wrong person.
When Jing Xichen heard that name, his expression became solemn andplicated.
Speaking of which, that fellow can be considered my twin brother. He is the son of the State Preceptor of Dongli, and I was the one who was abandoned from the moment I was born
The atmosphere gradually became heavy.
Then, Jing Xichen chuckled and broke the heavy atmosphere. Fortunately, Im lucky and survived sessfully. Im living quite well now.
Looking at the smile on Jing Xichens face, MO Ruyue felt that he was trying to be brave.
Being abandoned from birth must not have felt good.
He had suffered the pain of the world and tasted the coldness of the world.
MO Ruyue didnt know how tofort Jing Xichen.
He had never expected that there would be an ominous feudal tradition of twins in this era. Whenever twins appeared, one of them would be abandoned by their parents.
In her world, giving birth to twins was a great thing.
It will definitely be better in the future.
There was no way to go back to the past. He could only look to the future.
Jing Xichen stared into MO Ruyues clear eyes and said in a drawn-out tone, Yes, it will definitely be better in the future.
Lets hope so.
I originally wanted to treat Senior Brother to a meal, but I havent had a meal yet.
MO Ruyue said regretfully.
However, he felt that he had saved money.
Theres a wonton shop up ahead. Why dont Junior Sister treat Senior Brother to a bowl of wontons?
Jing Xichen suggested.
MO Ruyue brought the Seven-Colored Fire Seed and Jing Xichen back to the Devil World. They had been out for nearly ten days.
On the way back, Jing Xichen and MO Ruyue were camping in the suburbs and didnt make it in time to enter the city.
Even if they flew into the city, there was no inn that would open the door for them, so they might as well stay in the suburbs for the night.
The night was dark and the moon was bright. Mo Ruyue shrunk her neck. It was still a little cold in the middle of the night.
Junior Sister, wait here for a while. Senior Brother will go and pick up some firewood.
Alright, Senior Brother, go early ande back early.
MO Ruyue hugged her arm and took a deep breath.
Jing Xichen was about to leave when he heard MO Ruyue gasp. He took off his coat and said,Put it on. Dont catch a cold.
But, Senior Brother, youll catch a cold.
MO Ruyue did not take the clothes from him immediately.
Long-winded.
Jing Xichen snapped and draped the clothes over MO Ruyue.
Then, she left without looking back.
Wei Ruyue could feel the warmth of the coat and the faint scent of herbs. This scent was refreshing.
Since Jing Xichen had already given her his coat, MO Ruyue unceremoniously wrapped it around her body. With the coat wrapped around her, she finally felt less cold.
Her body was warm.
She used stones to build a fire pit so that she could start a fire when Jing
Xichen returned.
Suddenly, a rustling sound came from the bushes in the dark. MO Ruyue nced over and a trace of doubt shed in her eyes. She asked tentatively,
Senior Brother?
However, there was no response.
Could it be some wild beast?
MO Ruyue silently took out a brick from her backpack, preparing to smash it down when the wild beast came out.
This brick was no joke.
She slowly got up and walked closer to the grass.
Ah The other party suddenly screamed.
MO Ruyue was so frightened that she screamed out of instinct.
She quickly stopped screaming and looked at the figure in front of her. It seemed to be a youth.
Stop shouting, stop shouting. Who are you?
Nio Ruyue hurriedly asked, her eyes full of doubt.
Unexpectedly, the young man stopped talking and got up to run away.
He seemed to have been frightened and was especially afraid of MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue was worried that something might happen to the young man in the wilderness, so she somersaulted in front of him and said,Dont be afraid. Im not a bad person.
Her voice softened, hoping to calm the young man.
The young man red at MO Ruyue. Dont kill me, dont kill me.
I wont kill you. Im a good person.
MO Ruyue coughed lightly.
Although she was indeed from the Demon Realm, she could be considered a good person.
The young man slowly calmed down, but his body could not help but tremble.
With the help of the bright moonlight, MO Ruyue could clearly see the youths appearance.
His body was a little thin and his face was covered in dust. His original appearance could not be seen clearly.
She walked towards the young man and said slowly, Im really not a bad person. I wont hurt you.
The young man was in a sorry state like a stray dog. Even though his emotions had been calmed down, his eyes were still filled with uneasiness and vignce.
It seemed that it would run away once it was frightened.
MO Ruyue reached out her hand and gently stroked the youths hair to calm his emotions.
Are you hungry? I have pastries.
As she spoke, she took out a bag of pastries from her pocket.
The pastry had already been squeezed into a ball, emitting a faint pastry fragrance.
Although the appearance was no longer beautiful, it did not affect the taste.
The young man swallowed his saliva, his eyes staring at the pastries.
Nio Ruyue could smell the scent of blood on the youths body. She frowned slightly, wondering what had happened to this youth.
Come, eat.
After receiving MO Ruyues affirmation, the youth could no longer control himself and started wolfing down his food..
Chapter 669 - 669: An Unarmed Youth
Chapter 669 - 669: An Unarmed Youth
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
At this moment, Jing Xichen also returned.
When the young man saw Jing Xichen, he quickly hid behind MO Ruyue.
Who is he?
Jing Xichen also saw the youth, and a hint of doubt shed across his eyes.
MO Ruyue held the young mans hand and exined, l just found a young man in the bushes. 1 dont know what this guys name is.
She turned around and said to the young man,Be good. Were all good people. Dont be afraid.
Jing Xichen had some doubts in his heart. He started the fire and then began to size up the youth.
The young man did not say a word from the beginning to the end, sticking to Nio Ruyues side.
It seemed that the only person he trusted was MO Ruyue.
Jing Xichen was a little displeased when he saw the young man sticking to MO Ruyue like a puppy. He said,Are you going to bring him back to the Demon Realm?
When Jing Xichen mentioned the Devil World, the young mans eyes were filled with hatred, and his hands were tightly gripping a stone.
These two people were actually the bastards of the demon world!
MO Ruyue nced at the young man. She didnt know if it was her imagination, but she felt that there was a sh of hatred in the young mans eyes.
Looking carefully, it seemed to be gone again.
Was she seeing things?
Send him back after we ask him.
After all, she was not familiar with this young man, and she could not bring someone she was not familiar with into her own house.
Then, MO Ruyue gently said to the brother, whats your name?
Where was his home? Ill send you back tomorrow morning.
The young many on the ground, closed his eyes, and fell into a deep sleep. He did not seem to want to answer MO Ruyues question.
MO Ruyue felt helpless when she saw this.
How pitiful. I dont know what kind of stimtion she suffered, but she cant even speak.
MO Ruyue sighed, her eyes full of pity.
Jing Xichen seemed to have sensed something, but he didnt say it out loud.
There was something fishy about this youth.
Junior Sister, its gettingte, you should rest first.
Yes, Senior Brother, you should rest early too.
MO Ruyue responded and theny down on a pile of weeds.
This kind of harsh environment was nothing to her. She had never been a flower that grew up in a greenhouse.
After running around for a long time during the day, MO Ruyue soon fell asleep.
Seeing that the young man and MO Ruyue were both asleep, the firewood in the bonfire crackled.
Jing Xichen slowly closed his eyes and seemed to have fallen asleep.
In the wee hours of the morning, the young man suddenly opened his eyes. He looked at the motionless woman and then at the man who had already closed his eyes. He was holding a sharp stone in his hand.
He quietly sat up and threw the stone at MO Ruyue.
At this moment, Jing Xichen suddenly opened his eyes. He shot out a silver needle and inserted it into the young mans acupuncture point. The youths entire body seemed to be frozen, unable to move at all.
Who are you?
Jing Xichen questioned the young man coldly, his sharp eyes devoid of mercy.
Fortunately, he could tell that this youth was not simple. Otherwise
MO Ruyue was also awoken by the noise. The moment she opened her eyes, she saw the young man raising a rock and seemingly about to throw it at her.
She rolled and pulled away from the youngster.
He turned to look at Jing Xichen and asked in confusion,Senior Brother, what happened?
Ask him. It seems that he wants to kill you!
Jing Xichen raised his finger and pointed at the motionless youth, his eyes turning colder and colder.
If this youth wanted to kill them, then he didnt mind killing a youth with his own hands.
He had always taken revenge.
At this moment, the geniuss fur was shining, the air was cold, and the rocks beside him were wet with dew.
Im going to kill you two bastards. You deserve to die!
The youth roared.
Mo Ruyue was surprised to hear the young mans voice.So youre not mute or deaf.
She thought the young man was mute when he didnt speak. Bastards, heartless bastards, Im going to kill you!
The youth shouted loudly, but his body could not move at all.
His eyes were filled with hatred.
MO Ruyue frowned slightly. She found the young mans shouting very strange.
Youre really strange, young man. Do we have a grudge against you? She had never offended this young man before, right?
Not only did she not offend him, but she even gave him something to eat.
However, this youth treated them as enemies.
You are from the Demon Realm, you all deserve to die!
The young mans tears fell.
So what if were from the Demon Realm? Did he kill your entire family?
Kill my entire family? Our entire vige was killed by the people of the Demon Realm. If you dont kill me today, I will definitely tten the Demon Realm in the future.
The young man said fiercely.
She had an irreconcble hatred for the Demon Realm.
MO Ruyue nced at Jing Xichen. Of course, she did not believe that the people of the Devil Realm would bring people to ughter the vige.
The people of the Demon Realm did everything with a purpose. They would not massacre a vige for no reason.
A vige was not worth the mo territories.
You said your entire vige was massacred by the Devil Realm? Jing Xichen asked calmly. How are you still alive?
Thats because Im lucky and escaped death!
Alright, youre lucky. Then tell me, why did the demon world ughter your vige?
Jing Xichen said calmly. He hadnt received any news of a massacre in the vige recently.
Moreover, it was impossible for the Demon Realm to massacre the vige.
Jing Xichen was very sure of this.
The demon world is full of evil. You cannibals regard life as grass and have no humanity. How can there be a reason for killing?
The young man gritted his teeth as if he wanted to skin MO Ruyue and Jing Xichen alive.
Jing Xichen stood up and stretched his body. The reputation of our Demon Realm is indeed not very good, but we cant allow others to be wronged. The dignified Demon Realm ughtered a vige without a purpose. Do you really think we have nothing to do?
Thats right. Theres no need for our Demon Realm to attack ordinary people.
There must be some misunderstanding.
MO Ruyue also firmly believed that the people of the Devil Realm would not do such a thing.
The young man did not believe MO Ruyue and Jing Xichens words. He said coldly,lf it wasnt your Demon Realm, who else would do such a heartless thing?
Jing Xichen removed the silver needles from the young mans body and Lets go, bring us to your vige to take a look. If it was really done by the people of the Demon Realm, Im willing to be killed by you.
If it was really done by the people of the Demon Realm, then Ill kill all those people of the Demon Realm who ughtered your vige. How about it? MO Ruyue added.
Only when a god was in the demon world would he know what the people of the demon world would do.
The young man regained his freedom, but he did not throw down the stone in his hand. He red at MO Ruyue and Jing Xichen with hatred.
The words of the people of the Demon Realm are not credible at all.
Anyway, you dont have any other choice now. Youre just a defenseless youth, and we have more than enough power to kill you. Why dont you choose to believe us?
MO Ruyue said casually.
She didnt argue with the youngster because there was no need for that.
The youth thought for a while and fell silent for a long time. He was indeed not a match for these two fellows.
It was more than enough for these two guys to kill him.
It was hard to see the two of them being so magnanimous. Could it be that he had really misunderstood them?
The young mans thoughts wereplicated. In the end, he chose to believe the two people in front of him..
Chapter 670 - 670: Change of Name
Chapter 670: Change of Name
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
You two,e with me.
He turned around and led the two of them toward his vige.
The young man rubbed his stomach awkwardly. He straightened his back and did not look back.
Hungry?
MO Ruyue had nothing to eat on her, and the young man had already finished the pastries from yesterday.
She returned her coat to Jing Xichen. It wasnt as cold as before.
Im not hungry!
The young mans face was filled with stubbornness.
MO Ruyue shook her head helplessly. In the young mans eyes, she was his enemy.
After walking for about an hour, they finally found a small vige in a mountain depression.
There was no movement in the small vige. The air was filled with the smell of blood.
This ce had suffered a terrible massacre.
The young man ran all the way back to his home. Looking at his family members lying in a pool of blood, he plopped down on the ground and wailed.
Father, Mother!
MO Ruyue looked at the corpses strewn all over the ce, and a trace of pity shed across her eyes.
The scene of blood flowing like a river made her flinch, but she knew that there would be more such scenes in the future, so she had to face them.
Jing Xichen looked fearless, as if he was already used to such a scene. He didnt panic at all.
He checked the corpse to see if there were any clues.
There were about thirty people in the vige, men, women, old and young.
There was also a swaddled infant that was directly split into two. Seeing this scene, MO Ruyue couldnt help but clench her fists.
This is too cruel.
She didnt dare to look at him.
This is what your Demon Realm did!
The youth stood up and stretched out his hand to use MO Ruyue and Jing Xichen.
When Jing Xichen walked over, MO Ruyue hurried over and asked, How is it? Any clues?
Jing Xichens expression wasnt too good. There are indeed remnants of the demonic aura here.
When the young man heard this, he immediately said,lt was done by the people of the Demon Realm. What are you still arguing about now?
If it wasnt for the fact that he couldnt defeat the two fellows in front of him, he would have already pounced on them and killed them.
Such a blood feud was irreconcble,
Jing Xichen nced at the young man. Just based on the residual aura, we cant conclude that it was done by the Demon Realm. Moreover, I found this thing. This thing doesnt belong to our Demon Realm.
As he spoke, Jing Xichen took out a golden hidden weapon.
MO Ruyue looked at the hidden weapon and asked curiously,What is this?
A hidden weapon, not a product of the Devil Realm. As for where it came from, we still have to investigate.
Jing Xichen said slowly. This hidden weapon was definitely the key.
The young man was speechless and looked straight at Jing Xichen.
Jing Xichen handed the hidden weapon to the youth and said calmly, If you can find someone in the Demon Realm who uses this hidden weapon, you can kill that guy directly.
The young man took the golden hidden weapon and gritted his teeth. How can I kill people from the Demon Realm?
As long as you can find it, Ill personally kill it for you! You guys are cunning and cunning. Why should I believe you?
The young man snorted, not buying it.
Jing Xichen patted the young mans thin shoulder and said,Because you have no other choice. Believe us, you might be able to find the real murderer and avenge your parents and the people in your vige. You dont want them to die in vain, right?
The young man opened his mouth, but no sound came out.
Jing Xichen nced at the corpses on the ground and said to MO Ruyue,Help me bury these corpses first so that they wont rot and stink.
Alright.
MO Ruyue nodded. Actually, she didnt like to collect peoples corpses, but she had no choice now.
If these corpses were not cleaned up, they might rot and be smelly. It might even form a gue or mria.
The young man looked at the man and woman who were collecting the
corpses and lowered his head to look at the hidden weapons in his hands.
He held the hidden weapon tightly in his hand. Finally, his eyes became firm as he made a decision.
There was no better way now. He had to avenge the people in the vige and his parents.
From day to night, more than 30 corpses were finally buried under the ground.
The young man knelt on the ground and kowtowed toward the cemetery.
The resources of the entire vige had been plundered clean.
Before the young man left, he burned the vige to the ground. Looking at the fire, the young man lost his sight in tears.
On the way, the young man remained silent.
MO Ruyue peeked at the youths feelings for her and found that it was still zero.
It seemed that the young man still didnt trust them.
However, it was normal. In the youths heart, the people of the Demon Realm were all murderers.
He turned to look at Jing Xichen and realized that Jing Xichen was 21 points in love with him.
Whats wrong?
Seeing MO Ruyue staring at him, Jing Xichen couldnt help but wonder if there was something on his face.
Why was Ruyue staring at him?
MO Ruyue retracted her gaze and shook her head. Its nothing.
The idle system didnt have any missions recently, so she was a little bored.
She still wanted all kinds of rewards.
At the moment, she felt that everything else was good except for catching a de with her bare hands.
Brother, Im MO Ruyue, and hes Jing Xichen. Whats your name? Nio Ruyues gaze fell on the young man.
It seemed like he still didnt know what the young mans name was.
Li Goudan.
The young man said in a bad mood. His parents were illiterate, so they gave him a random name.
It was said that the more despicable the name, the better it was to be raised.
Li Goudan
This name was too ordinary.
Yes.
After you enter the Demon Realm, change your name and live with another identity from now on.
MO Ruyue thought for a moment. The young man had no family, so he could only survive in the Demon Realm.
The young man looked about fifteen or sixteen years old. After washing his dirty face, he looked a little handsome.
Dont even think about letting me join the Devil World. I wont join you wolves and tigers.
The youth snorted coldly. The reason why he agreed to follow them to the Demon Realm was that he wanted to find out who the murderer was as soon as possible.
He would never join the Demonic Realm, let alone be a part of the Demonic Realm.
Its up to you whether you want to join or not. You really have to change your name. Why dont you just call yourself Li Zeyan? Nio Ruyue immediately thought of a familiar name.
This name was quite nice.
Li Zeyan? This name is not bad.
Jing Xichen nodded his head repeatedly.
The young man didnt say anything. After all, he hadnt studied or read. He sounded like a cultured person.
At noon that day, they arrived at the Demon Realm.
MO Ruyue was going to the Demon Pce to report to the Demon Lord, so she had Li Zeyan follow Jing Xichen.
Wear the Seven-Colored Fire Seed.
Jing Xichen took out the seven-colored fire seed from his storage ring and left it with him for safekeeping on the way.
Alright.
MO Ruyue walked towards the Devil Pce with the seven-colored fire seed, feeling a little nervous.
She walked into the Demon Pce with her head lowered. The main hall was rather deserted. MO Ruyue could feel someone staring at her.
Greetings, Demon Venerable. Your subordinate has brought back the seven-colored fire seed.
As she spoke, she calmly opened the ss box and held it high above her head.
The seven-colored fire seed emitted the colors of a rainbow, and it was extremely dazzling.
Ming Sihan didnt expect MO Ruyue to finish the task so quickly. He leaned back in his chairzily and rested his chin on his palm.. He said casually, You finished the task alone?
Chapter 671 - 671: A Needle in the Flesh
Chapter 671: A Needle in the Flesh
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The Demon Venerables question made MO Ruyue feel uneasy, but she still answered honestly, Of course, Second Senior Brother and Fourth Senior Brother are also helping me. If I were to go on a mission alone, I dont know when I would be able toe back.
Would the Demon Lord be furious because he didntplete the mission alone?
It was not impossible.
MO Ruyue was already waiting for the Demon Venerables punishment.
Just as she thought that she was being punished by the Demon Lord, she heard the Demon Lord say faintly, Very good. If there are resources, use them. You know how to be flexible. As expected of the person I like. He didnt need that kind of rigid and stubborn person.
MO Ruyue heaved a long sigh of relief upon hearing the Honor Demons praise. Fortunately, she was not punished by the Honor Demon.
The seven-colored fire seed is useless to the venerable self. Ill give it to you as a gift.
Thank you, Demon Venerable.
MO Ruyue thanked him, but she was speechless in her heart.
What was the point of expecting her to hold onto the seven-colored fire seed if he threw something useless to her?
However, the seven-colored fire seed was indeed a good thing. She could keep it with her and sell it for money when she was short of money.
This Seven-Colored Fire Seed could be considered a rare item, so it should not be a problem for him to exchange it for a storage ring.
From tomorrow onwards, youll be learning cultivation techniques from me. Youre not allowed to bete.
Yes.
MO Ruyue replied respectfully. With the Demon Venerables guidance, her strength would definitely improve by leaps and bounds. Theres nothing for you to do here. You can go down now.
Yes, Demon Venerable.
MO Ruyue responded and turned to leave.
From the beginning to the end, he did not raise his head to look at the Demon Venerable.
Because she always remembered her senior brothers teachings, the demon did not like others to look at him directly. She had always kept this sentence in her heart.
Is this woman that afraid of me?
Ming Sihan didnt understand. He touched his chin. Was he not good-looking?
Xuanling immortal sect
Ye Xiong and his junior sister returned to the Celestial Gate together. When they saw their senior brother Lan Qi, neither of them took the initiative to speak.
Lan Qi looked at the two of them and seemed to have guessed something. His expression turned cold and he said coldly, Whats wrong? Wheres the seven-colored fire seed?
He had sent these two out to look for the Seven-Colored Fire Seed. He did not expect them to return so soon.
More than ten days earlier than he had expected.
Eldest Senior Brother, this matter is really not our fault.
Ye Xiong had yet to say anything, and he was already in a hurry to clear his name. He did not want to bear that responsibility.
His attitude directly angered Lan Qi. Lan Qis face was cold. If you didntplete the mission, just say it. Dont find any excuses. I dont want to hear your excuses.
Ye Xiongs face was ashen. He lowered his head and did not dare to speak.
Little Junior Sister, tell me.
Lan Qi called out his junior sister. He did not want to hear Ye Xiongs nonsense anymore.
You cant do anything but spoil things.
How many people in the entire immortal sect could be trusted?
MO Ruyue did not reply to the message for a long time, so it was unclear whether she was dead or alive.
Ye Xiong couldnt even do a thing well.
The others were also disobedient.
Because he was only the Eldest Senior Brother and not the Sect Master, everyone was unconvinced by his control.
My senior brother and I originally obtained the Seven-Colored Fire Seed from Senior Sister Wei of Dongli, but it was snatched away by a group of men in ck on our way back. We dont know who stole the Seven-Colored Fire
Seed.
He paused for a moment and saw that Eldest Senior Brother did not say anything.
On the way here, Sixth Senior Brother and I guessed that the seven-colored fire seed being snatched away might be Senior Sister Weis act, Little Junior Sister continued.
Thats right. Perhaps the Seven-Colored Fire Seed is still in Wei Hongmeis hands. She doesnt want to give the Seven-Colored Fire Seed to the Celestial Sect.
Ye Xiong spoke with a confident expression.
At this time, they needed to push someone out to take the me.
Regardless of whether it was Wei Hongmei who did it or not, he had to throw the me on her.
Wei Hongmei wasnt here anyway.
A hint of disappointment shed across Lan Qis eyes when he heard Ye Xiong and his junior sisters words.
Master is about toe out of seclusion. The seven-colored fire seed is a gift for Master toe out of seclusion. If the two of you cant even do this kind of thing well, whats the use?
Useless trash.
Lan Qis hands behind his back clenched into fists, and his face was filled with displeasure,
He was really going to be angered to death by these two bastards.
Ye Xiong and his Junior Sister knew that they were in the wrong, so they lowered their heads and did not dare to refute.
However, they didnt like being scolded by their senior brother.
Because Eldest Senior Brother was not qualified. Only Master could scold them.
Master only made Eldest Senior Brother the acting sect master, but in the end, this guy really took him seriously.
Get down. 1 get angry just looking at you!
Lan Qi berated. He was about to explode from anger.
Yes.
Ye Xiong and his junior sister quickly left Lan Qis room.
Soon, only Lan Qi was left in the room with an angry expression.
Useless trash!
Lan Qi shouted at the two departing figures.
Devil World
MO Ruyue returned to her room and met Qi Shaoyu and Xia Zhixing at the door.
Fifth Senior Brother, Sixth Senior Brother, why are you here?
Upon seeing her two Senior Brothers, MO Ruyue immediately greeted them warmly.
She was in a good mood now.
We heard that youre back, so we waited for you here.Qi Shaoyu had a faint smile on his face. He did not expect Ruyue toplete the mission so quickly.
It was much faster than he had imagined.
How was it? Did this trip go smoothly?
Xia Zhixing asked.
Seeing that Ru Yue had returned early, it should have been very smooth.
MO Ruyue invited the two of them to sit down in the courtyard outside and poured them some tea. It went quite smoothly. After all, Second Senior Brother and Fourth Senior Brother helped us.
Did anything happen in the Demon Realm?
There were a few who overestimated themselves and came to find trouble, but they were all dealt with by Third Senior Brother.
Xia Zhixing only felt that those people were overestimating themselves. The Demon Realm didnt take the initiative to find trouble with those people, but they still dared to find trouble with the Demon Realm.
Even if they were rushing to die, they wouldnt be so rash.
There shouldnt be anyone from the Devil Realm who would massacre a vige, right? MO Ruyue asked with a heavy expression.
ughter the vige?
Xia Zhixing and Qi Shaoyu looked at each other. They didnt know about this.
Ever since we entered the Demon Realm, we have never heard of our people ughtering viges. Ignore the rumors outside. Whatever dirty water is poured on the Demon Realm.
Qi Shaoyu thought that MO Ruyue had heard some negative rumors about the Devil World when she returned.
He had heard such negative rumors until his ears were covered in calluses.
If he had done it, then he had done it. If he hadnt done it, then he hadnt done it.
The people outside seemed to be possessed, thinking that all the bad things in the world were done by the demon world.
MO Ruyue nced at them and exined,l didnt hear any rumors, but on the way back, I saw more than 30 people in a vige being killed. The one who was still alive insisted that it was our Devil World who did it.
That guy should be with fourth senior brother now. Fourth senior brother and I brought him back.
Recently, the people of our demon world are all looking for the
Heaven-cleaving Sword. How can we have the time to ughter some vige?
The people of our demon world wont do anything like ughtering a vige. It might be possible to ughter an immortal sect.
Qi Shaoyu said thoughtfully.
Thats right. Theres no need for our Demon Realm to attack some unarmed people.
Xia Zhixing agreed with Qi Shaoyu.
When everyone entered the Demon Realm, who didnt treat the Demon Realm as a thorn in their flesh?
There was no good side to the Demon Realm. Everyone thought that all kinds of bad things were done by the people of the Demon Realm. After hearing too much, they naturally took those unrealistic rumors as facts.
After staying in the Demon Realm for a long time, they realized that they had too many misunderstandings about the Demon Realm..
Chapter 672 - 672: A Perfect Woman
Chapter 672 - 672: A Perfect Woman
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Thats strange. I dont know who did it.
MO Ruyue frowned. She had no thoughts about this matter.
At this moment, Jing Xichen, who was dressed in red, arrived with Li Zeyan.
Li Zeyans face was still dark, as if he didnt care about anyone. Junior Sister, did the Demon Lord say anything?
Jing Xichen arrived in the yard, ignoring the unhappy Li Zeyan.
From tomorrow onwards, the Demon Lord will personally teach me how to cultivate. Moreover, the Demon Lord did not ept the seven-colored fire
seed.
Oh, this means that the Demon Lord values you very much.
Jing Xichen said thoughtfully.
Qi Shaoyu and Xia Zhixing also nodded. The Demon Lord had never valued any Saintess so much.
It was obvious that the Demon Commander was quite satisfied with MO Ruyue.
In the future, MO Ruyue would be the favorite of the Demon Lord, and she would have more enemies outside.
Everyone was sitting in MO Yuyues yard while Li Zeyan stood outside, refusing toe in.
MO Ruyue stood up and said to Li Zeyan, who was standing outside the courtyard, Youre already in the Demon Realm. What else do you want?
l want revenge!
Li Zeyans eyes were like torches as his hands clenched into fists.
He still didnt know who the murderer was, but he felt that it was someone from the Demon Realm. However, these people from the Demon Realm didnt hurt him.
Therefore, he did not know who the real murderer was.
Theres no rush to take revenge. The murderer hasnt even been found yet.
Who are you going to take revenge on?
MO Ruyue walked up to Li Zeyan, feeling a little helpless.
She understood Li Zeyans feelings at this moment.
He, who originally had parents, became an orphan overnight. It must be very difficult for him, right?
Although the people of the Demon Realm are not good people, they are definitely not bad people who do all kinds of evil.
Qi Shaoyu also walked up to Li Zeyan. He could feel the anger in the youngsters eyes.
However, no matter how angry he was, he could not do anything to them.
If you want to take revenge so badly, you have to have some strength. How can you take revenge if you dont even have some strength?
Qi Shaoyu raised his eyebrows.
Li Zeyan lowered his eyes. Although he did not like these people from the Demon Realm, what they said was not wrong.
Even if they were his enemies, his current strength was simply not enough to fight against these people from the Demon Realm.
If you want to take revenge with your own hands, you can cultivate with me
in the future.
Qi Shaoyu looked at the young man in front of him and spoke earnestly. Jing Xichen sipped his tea leisurely and watched this scene silently.
Ruyue told you?
He asked in a low voice.
Yes, we all know. I wonder who is using the banner of our Demon Realm to burn, kill, and plunder outside. Do you think that our Demon Realm is easy to bully?
Xia Zhixing was furious.
Li Zeyan entered the courtyard and stared at the people from the Demon Realm in front of him without saying a word.
This is the hidden weapon we found in his vige. Have you seen it before? Jing Xichen took out a golden hidden weapon and ced it on the table.
Qi Shaoyu and Xia Zhixing looked at it carefully.
Then, Xia Zhixing looked at Li Zeyan. Is your vige Xixia Country?
Yes.
Li Zeyan responded and looked straight at Xia Zhixing.
Could it be that this man knew who the murderer was?
The others also stared at Xia Zhixing. Did Xia Zhixing see something?
Xia Zhixing exined, I saw this kind of hidden weapon before I entered the Devil World. It was used by a disciple of Ten Thousand Arts Sect. But this disciple seemed to have been driven out of Ten Thousand Arts Sect for some reason.
But this Ten Thousand Arts Sect was already exterminated three years ago. In one night, everyone in the Ten Thousand Arts Sect was killed. At that time, some people said that it was done by the Devil World.
Qi Shaoyus face turned serious. If it was as Xia Zhixing said, then things would not be simple.
MO Ruyues eyes narrowed. That wont be easy to find. Could it be the disciple who was chased out?
Its not impossible.
Jing Xichen knocked on the table.
Li Zeyan was silent. He did not know if what these people said was true.
Or was it a lie to deceive him?
At this moment, another voice rang out from outside the courtyard. Senior
Sister Sister, this ce is really lively.
Shen Yunyan came in from outside and saw her three senior brothers.
Seeing her Senior Brothers and MO Ruyue getting along harmoniously, Shen
Yunyan felt a little upset.
When did MO Ruyue get such good treatment in the past?
The Senior Brothers were all mesmerized by MO Ruyue.
She had already spread the news that MO Ruyue had gone out to look for the Seven-Colored Fire Seed. Why did MO Ruyue bring the Seven-Colored Fire Seed back so easily?
Those people were all idiots. They knew that the Saintess of the Devil World wanted to snatch the Seven-Colored Fire Seed, but they didnt hide it well.
He really hoped that MO Ruyue would fail the mission and be punished by the Demon Venerable.
Nio Ruyue watched as Shen Yunyan walked in from outside, and the smile on her face gradually disappeared.
Then, she smiled hypocritically. What brings Junior Sister here?
Shen Yunyan saw that her senior brothers were all present and pretended to be familiar with MO Ruyue.
In front of her senior brothers, she was a perfect woman.
Yun Yan heard that Senior Sister is back, so she came to see Senior Sister. I didnt expect all of you to be one step ahead of her. Senior Sister, did your trip go smoothly?
Shen Yunyan had a gentle smile on her face and even her voice was soft.
If she didnt know that Shen Yunyan already knew Shen Yunyans true colors, she would have believed that this woman was as gentle as water.
En, it went quite well. I really envy Junior Sister for being able to stay in the Demon Realm. The outside world is dangerous. If it wasnt because Im already a Saintess, 1 really wouldnt want to go out.
MO Ruyues voice was filled with pride and satisfaction.
He mocked Shen Yunyan for not bing the Saintess, while showing off that his senior brother had helped him.
This was called giving him a taste of his own medicine.
Shen Yunyan cared about these things the most. As long as she brought them up, Shen Yunyan would definitely be angered to death.
The smile on Shen Yunyans face became more and more stiff and unnatural.
When the men heard these words, they knew very well. However, it was still not good for them to interfere in the matters between
He didnt want to make his two junior sisters unhappy.
One is the seventh junior sister, one is the little junior sister.
Since Senior Sister is so envious of me, why dont you resign from your position as the Holy Maiden?
Shen Yunyan said with a fake smile.
Nio Ruyue sighed. The Demon Lord has already given me the Seven-Colored Fire Seed, which means that the Demon Lord thinks highly of me. I cant disappoint him. After all, not everyone can be valued by the Demon Lord.
Shen Yunyan listened to MO Ruyues proud words and her face gradually turned ashen. If she continued to speak like this, she might be angered to death by MO Ruyue!
Moreover, the Demon Venerable had even bestowed the seven-colored fire seed to MO Ruyue.
She hadnt even met the demon, let alone received a reward from him.
Who is this young man? Why havent I seen him before? Shen Yunyan came to Li Zeyans side and looked around him.
Is he a new disciple?
He had never seen her before, but she looked quite good..
Chapter 673 - 673: See the King of Hell Immediately
Chapter 673 - 673: See the King of Hell Immediately
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Li Zeyan saw Shen Yunyan staring at him and subconsciously took half a step back.
She did not like strangers approaching her.
Oh, youre still shy? My name is Shen Yunyan. You can call me Sister Yunyan. My senior sister is the Holy Maiden of the Demon World. Shes usually quite busy.
Shen Yunyan would make herself into a person who was willing to help others and understand others, so that more people would like her.
MO Ruyue looked at the scene indifferently and did not say anything.
She would indeed be very busy in the future.
Li Zeyan looked at Shen Yunyan and felt that this woman was kind and amiable. However, no matter how kind and amiable this woman was, she belonged to the demon world. Before the murderer was found, he hated everything about the demon world.
Junior Sister Ruyue, how are you going to settle him?
Jing Xichens eyes fell on MO Ruyue. He was going out soon, so he naturally couldnt take care of Li Zeyan.
Li Zeyan could only leave it to Ruyue.
When Shen Yunyan heard this, she hurriedly said, I think 1 hit it off with him.
Why dont you let me take care of him?
MO Ruyue nced at Shen Yunyan. What was this woman trying to do?
She actually took the initiative to stop the job of taking care of the people.
The others also looked at Shen Yunyan with confusion on their faces.
Seeing that no one was speaking, Shen Yunyan questioned MO Ruyue, Could it be that Senior Sister is reluctant to let me take care of this little brother? Are you afraid that I wont be able to take good care of him?
MO Ruyue was really afraid that Shen Yunyan would lead Li Zeyan astray. After all, Shen Yunyan was a master of disguise and was not what she appeared to be.
Who knew what Shen Yunyan would instill in Li Zeyan?
MO Ruyue did not refute him directly. Instead, she looked at Li Zeyan and said, Let him choose who to take care of. He can either stay with me or with you. Otherwise, Ill go to Eldest Senior Brother and ask him to arrange a new ce for him.
There was an empty room next door that could still be used.
It all depended on whether Li Zeyan was willing or not.
Seeing that MO Ruyue did not stop her, Shen Yunyan gently said to Li Zeyan,Follow me. Ill take good care of you.
Li Zeyan nced at Shen Yunyan and then at MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue did not say anything. Alright, Ill follow you.
Li Zeyan promised Shen Yunyan.
The woman in front of him was very gentle, as gentle as a big sister.
Once upon a time, he had fantasized about how good it would be if he had a sister.
Seeing that she had been chosen, Shen Yunyan cast a smug look at MO Ruyue.
Whats your name?
Shen Yunyan asked gently.
Li Zeyan blurted out, LiLi Zeyan.
He almost forgot that he had changed his name.
Brother Zeyan,e with me.
Shen Yunyans voice was gentle as she took the initiative to hold Li Zeyans hand.
Li Zeyan did not think much of it and followed Shen Yunyan.
Shen Yunyan turned around and smiled provocatively. She said to MO Ruyue,Senior Sister Sister, Ill take Brother Zeyan and leave.
Go. I hope you can take good care of Zeyan.
Nio Ruyue smiled but did not stop him.
Shen Yunyan waved at her senior brothers and said,Senior Brother, Ill leave with Brother Zeyan first.
Are you just going to watch Li Zeyan and Little Junior Sister leave? Jing Xichen asked after the two of them left.
If she has time to take care of him, then so be it. I dont have time to take care of Li Zeyan anyway.
Moreover, she was not Li Zeyans biological sister, so she had no obligation to take care of him.
Even if she was a biological sister, she had no obligation to take care of her younger brother.
Why would she argue with Shen Yunyan just to take care of Li Zeyan? There was no need for that, and it would not benefit her at all. Its okay. Well help take care of the child when were free.
Xia Zhixing said.
As long as he entered the Demon Realm, no matter how well he lived, that child would definitely not starve to death.
The next day, MO Ruyue had to go to the Demon Pce to find the Demon Venerable, so she woke up early in the morning.
After washing up, she went out and went straight to the Demon Lords bedroom.
The entire Demon Pce was cold. There were also Demon Realm disciples guarding outside. It was impossible for outsiders to easily approach.
The Demon Lord is already waiting inside. Pleasee in, Holy Maiden.
The disciples of the Devil World outside greeted MO Ruyue respectfully when they saw her.
Nio Ruyue nodded and walked into the Demon Commanders bedroom with a calm expression.
There was a faint cedar fragrance in the bedroom, which was a little refreshing.
Through the screen, she seemed to see a figure. MO Ruyue hurriedly lowered her head and respectfully said, Your subordinate greets the Demon Lord.
The Demon Lord replied in a low voice. His figure came out from behind the screen with a domineering aura.
MO Ruyue immediately saw the Demon Venerables ck clothes.
Raise your head.
This subordinate does not dare!
Are you not listening to my orders?
Ming Sihans eyes turned cold. This woman was so timid?
This subordinate will obey.
Under the Demon Venerables coercion, MO Ruyue slowly raised her head and saw the Demon Venerables face.
Looking at the Demon Venerables face, she felt her heart skip a beat. She could not believe what she was seeing.
She didnt expect the demon lord to be so good-looking.
Needless to say, his facial features were three-dimensional. His deep and sharp eyes were filled with evil intent. His dark red pupils seemed to have ayer of ice shards, as if he could kill his enemy with a single gaze.
He was tall, and his long silver hair stood up with a silver crown. It was eye-catching.
It was like a character that had walked out of a manga.
His expression was cold and distant, and his eyes were filled with killing intent.
As expected of a viin. His appearance was very viinous.
Havent you seen enough?
Ming Sihan turned around and walked to the courtyard outside the bedroom. This woman was stunned.
Havent you seen the world?
MO Ruyue came back to her senses and followed closely behind Ming Sihan.
She ttered him,Your subordinate has indeed been bewitched by the Demon Venerable.
Only by pleasing this man could her future be bright.
When it was time to tter, he had to do it. For the sake of his future, he had to fight hard.
The lowly worker had to bootlick the demon.
What do you mean?
Ming Sihan walked to theke and looked at the big fish in the water.
MO Ruyue smiled. Ive never seen a man more handsome than the Demon Venerable. If the Demon Venerable ims to be second, no one would dare to im to be first.
Really?
The demon was skeptical.
Demon Venerable, everything I said is true.
These words were not considered ttery. This Demon Venerable was indeed not bad looking.
It was the truth.
The Demon Lords hand swept across the calmke and he said coldly,Between this venerable self and the person in theke, who is more beautiful?
MO Ruyue took two steps forward and saw a picture on the surface of the water. It was a picture of a sage-like man who was as beautiful as jade.
This man was the person whom MO Ruyue had confessed to before, and he was also the Sect Master of Xuanling Immortal Sect. Why? Do you think this man is good-looking now?
The demons voice was filled with danger.
It was as if MO Ruyue would meet the King of Hell immediately if she said one wrong word, and it would happen in the blink of an eye.
No, no, no. This man is not special. Hes not good-looking at all. Hes not as good-looking as the Demon Venerable. Hes not worthy of being mentioned in the same breath as the Demon Venerable.
MO Ruyue said sincerely.
Really?
l dont know what others think, but I think that guy is inferior to the Demon Venerable. If anyone likes that guy, it must be that guys blind. MO Ruyue said righteously.
It was as if every word she said was from the bottom of her heart..
Chapter 674 - 674: Only Disciple
Chapter 674 - 674: Only Disciple
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Regardless of whether this woman was telling the truth or not, Ming Sihan felt that this womans words were very pleasing to the ears.
Alright, Ill teach you some simple cultivation techniques today. You have three days to learn them.
Three days!
Isnt it too rushed? She wasnt an immortal.
Whats wrong? You cant even learn it in three days?
I, Ill try.
MO Ruyue felt that it was a little too much.
Ming Sihan said, The more you learn, the more you will be able to deal with people. Dont think that the position of Saintess is easy to sit on.
Subordinate knows the meaning of the word.
MO Ruyue had epted her fate, but she had no choice but to ept it.
Then, Ming Sihan demonstrated it very quickly. He even muttered a few words.
Have you learned it?
You should have learned it, right?
MO Ruyues lips twitched. It was over before she could even get a clear look.
Stupid.
Ming Sihan shook his head and demonstrated his actions.
This time, MO Ruyue saw it clearly.
Have you learned it?
Ming Sihan asked again.
l should be able to understand now.
MO Ruyue nodded, feeling a little stressed.
When MO Chengfeng came over, he saw Ming Sihan teaching MO Ruyue a technique.
His face darkened. The demon actually taught Ruyue step by step?
This was something that had never happened before.
He lowered his head and restrained his spirit.
Demon Venerable, the invitation has been sent out. This is a letter from the studio.
Ming Sihan asked MO Ruyue to continue practicing while he took the letter from MO Chengfengs hand. After reading the letter, he turned the letter into ashes.
l understand. You can leave first.
However, MO Chengfeng did not leave immediately. Instead, he stood where he was and said,[Demon Lord],[Subordinate],[Subordinate]
Ming Sihan looked at MO Ruyue, who was practicing her martial arts, like a teacher. He raised his hand slightly and said, 1 know what you want to say. Dont worry, it wont take long for me to avenge you.
Thank you, Demon Venerable.
Mo Chengfeng spoke in a low voice. He had been in the Devil World for so long. If he did not take revenge now, he was afraid that he would go crazy.
He had already waited long enough in the Demon Realm.
It was possible for him toplete his revenge n alone.
Therefore, he needed to borrow the power of the Demon Venerable.
For this reason, he chose to stay in the Demon Realm.
Demon Venerable, am I right to practice like this?
After grasping the essentials, MO Ruyue felt that her body was undergoing some changes.
Ming Sihan looked at MO Ruyue expressionlessly and said,Continue practicing. Dont talk too much.
Yes.
MO Ruyue felt that Ming Sihan was like a strict teacher. He didnt smile and was very boring.
She practiced over and over again while Ming Sihan sat leisurely at the side, drinking tea.
Focus, what do you want?
A sudden shout made MO Ruyue!s spirits rise.
She was just distracted for a moment, and Ming Sihan could actually feel it?
MO Ruyue did not dare to be distracted and kept in touch with him diligently.
Previously, he felt that he wouldnt be able to learn it in three days, but now, he felt that one day was enough.
Practice makes perfect.
When MO Ruyue came back to her senses, she found that the Demon Venerable had disappeared.
She looked around to make sure that the Demon Venerable was not nearby. Then, she walked to where the Demon Venerable was and prepared to drink some water.
However, there was only one cup on the coffee table. She hesitated for a moment and picked up the teapot.
Then, he gulped down the tea.
After drinking it, I feel that Im thirsty for my own blood.
What are you doing?
The Demon Venerables voice sounded behind MO Ruyue.
[Salted Fish System: Please increase the Demon Lords heart rate to 50.]
At this moment, the salted fish system that he had not seen for many days appeared.
If not for her backpack, she would have thought that the salted fish system was just a figment of her imagination.
However, why did he have to increase the Demon Lords interest in him?
MO Ruyue lowered her head and apologized, Im thirsty and want to drink some water.
So you took the kettle and filled it with water without caring about your image?
It was also the first time he had seen this woman drinking tea so freely.
Thats more refreshing.
MO Ruyue said softly.
Actually, she didnt want to do that. She couldnt drink from the Demon Lords cup, right?
Men like the Demon Lord were generally obsessed with cleanliness. She did not want to be punished by the Demon Lord because of this.
Ming Sihan did not me MO Ruyue.
Seeing that MO Ruyue had learned the simple cultivation technique so quickly, he said to MO Ruyue,Next, Ill teach you a sword technique. After you learn it, you canplete your first mission.
What is the mission? Dont ask too much. Youll know when you need to know.
Yes, Demon Venerable.
MO Ruyue replied helplessly.
ording to past examples, the Holy Maidens mission was to provoke other immortal sects and snatch some useful treasures back.
It was estimated that the mission in the near future should be the same.
Those people from the immortal sects could not defeat the Demon Venerable, but they could defeat the Holy Maiden, so they would attack the Holy Maiden.
After all, most people liked to pick on the weak.
Then, a sword appeared in Ming Sihans hand. The sword was emitting a ck gas. It was obviously an evil sword.
Ming Sihan held his sword. His body was agile and he reacted quickly. He drew ck arcs in the air.
His swordsmanship was swift and unrestrained, dazzling MO Ruyue.
Did you see it clearly?
Ming Sihan turned around and asked.
If he knew it in one try, he would be a genius.
Nio Ruyue bit her dry lips. She had already forgotten how to do the first step. e here.
Seeing MO Ruyues dazed look, Ming Sihan could only let MO Ruyue get close to him and prepare to teach her step-by-step.
As she approached the Demon Venerable, MO Ruyue did not dare to let her imagination run wild. She focused on each and every move.
Therefore, nothing particrly awkward happened during the entire process.
You know it?
Ming Sihan let go of MO Ruyues hand. He was very satisfied with MO Ruyues serious attitude.
He didnt like women who would let their imagination run wild when they got close to him. It would be difficult for him to learn sword techniques if his imagination ran wild.
It was too easy to waste time.
MO Ruyue nodded with a cold look in her eyes.Ill try.
He remembered most of the steps.
You can use Ghost Sense to practice it.
Ming Sihan passed the ghost thought to MO Ruyue. The ghost thought emitted a thicker ck gas in MO Ruyues hand.
His eyes turned cold as he looked at MO Ruyue in disbelief.
The ghost thought was an unusual sword. Only those it recognized would emit ck gas.
The ck gas was actually Devil Qi, which had a certain effect on cultivation.
If the ghost thought did not approve, then there would not be any demonic qi on the body. In the hands of ordinary people, the ghost thought was just an ordinary iron sword.
This woman was born to be a Fiendish Cultivator.
MO Ruyue held the sword in her hand and felt that it was very smooth. She quickly learned the sword technique.
Not bad, youve trained very well.
Ming Sihan pped his hands. His dark red eyes were filled with satisfaction for MO Ruyue.
This woman really made him feel that she was not ordinary.
Demon Venerable, you tter me.
MO Ruyue replied humbly.
MO Ruyue took advantage of this gap to check the Demon Lords attraction value for her. It was exactly five points.
She instantly felt that the mission this time was not simple. She could only take it step by step.
Your name is MO Ruyue, right!
Yes.
This venerable self sees that you have extraordinary talent and amazing bones, so Ill make an exception and take you in as this venerable selfs only disciple.
In the future, you can just call me master!
Ming Sihan only felt that this woman would definitely have great achievements in the future, so he made an exception and wanted to take her as his disciple..
Chapter 675 - 675: Picking the Black Heart Fruit
Chapter 675 - 675: Picking the ck Heart Fruit
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue was stunned. The Demon Lord wanted to take her as his disciple?
Was this a good thing or a bad thing for her?
What, you dont want to?
Ming Sihans face turned cold. This woman didnt know how to appreciate favors.
MO Ruyue immediately knelt on one knee and said, Master, please ept my worship.
The only disciple of the Demon Lord, how prestigious was that?
Thinking about how she, a spy from an immortal sect, had worked her way up from the bottom to the Demon Lords disciple, wasnt this a history of hard work?
Master, am I no longer the Saintess?
Of course youre the Holy Maiden. Youre also my personal disciple. Ming Sihan hoped that MO Ruyue would achieve something great and not disappoint him.
Dont waste your time on love affairs.
Alright.
MO Ruyue nodded. She felt that she was lucky. Not only did she be the
Saintess, but she also became the Demon Venerables disciple.
The ovepping of the alternate ounts was a little powerful.
She just wanted to make money and build her career, and strive to snatch away the position of the Demon Lord.
A disciple without ambition was not a good disciple.
At this moment, Ming Sihan didnt know what MO Ruyue was thinking. If he knew what MO Ruyue was thinking, he didnt know what he would think.
He taught his disciple, but his master starved to death.
Since youre my personal disciple, Ill give you this ghost thought as a disciple eptance gift.
l dare not ept such a great gift.
Nio Ruyue held the ghost thought in her hand. She was deeply shocked.
The Demon Lord had actually given her a ghost will without a word. This sword was obviously not an ordinary sword.
Whats there to be afraid of? If I tell you to ept it, just ept it. Dont talk nonsense.
Ming Sihan said impatiently. He doesnt like to talk too much.
Thank you, Master.
MO Ruyue held the Ghost Will. Her Master was so good to her. Even if she took away the position of Demon Lord in the future, she would not mistreat her Master.
After all, Master had treated her well.
Thinking of his Demon Venerable Master and then thinking of his master in Xuanling Immortal Sect, there was no harm withoutparison.
She cherished her Demon Venerable Master too much. Its gettingte. You should go back and rest first.
Yes, Master.
MO Ruyue was in a good mood as she took the ghost thoughts and left. Since her Demon Venerable Master was so nice to her, she had to cherish her master.
Ming Sihan watched as MO Ruyue hopped away and shook his head helplessly, hoping that MO Ruyue would not disappoint him.
The person chosen by the ghost thought should not be wrong.
On the way back, MO Ruyue happened to bump into Third Senior Brother Ye
Yunfeng. She greeted him, Senior Brother.
Ye Yunfeng stopped in his tracks and nced at MO Ruyue. He went to where the Demon Lord is?
Yeah, did Senior Brother juste back from outside?
Mo Ruyue asked curiously. Looking at the dagger on Ye Yunfengs waist, she guessed that he had gone out to do something again.
There seemed to be a little smell of blood on his body. He did not know if he had gone out to kill people or monsters.
Yes.
Ye Yunfeng responded indifferently. He was not good with words to begin with, so he naturally would not speak too much.
If it could be expressed simply, it would be expressed simply.
His gaze fell on the sword beside MO Ruyue, and his eyes turned cold. Ghost thoughts?!
This sword belonged to the Demon Lord, and now it was on Ruyue!
Yes, the Demon Lord gave it to me.
MO Ruyue didnt want to say that she was the Demon Venerables master, fearing that her senior brother would be jealous.
Although they usually addressed these men as fellow disciples, they were not the Demon Lords disciples, but his subordinates.
Now that she had been taken in as a disciple by the Demon Lord, wouldnt she be suspected of showing off if she said this?
Therefore, she tried her best not to mention this matter in front of her senior brothers.
The Demon Lord is good to you.
Ye Yunfeng was deep in thought. At least the Demon Lord wouldnt treat others so well. The Demon Lord actually gave away the ghost thoughts.
It was unexpected.
MO Ruyue also nodded. The Demon Lord is different from what I imagined.
He doesnt seem to be that difficult to get along with.
She had a bad temper and a cold personality, but it was alright. It was not that she could notmunicate with him.
Yes, do well. If you need any help, you can look for me. Ill definitely help you.
Ye Yunfeng raised his hand and patted his junior sisters shoulder.
He felt that his junior sister would definitely be able to achieve great things.
Hearing Ye Yunfengs words, MO Ruyue nodded her head, feeling a warmth in her heart.
When she was in Xuanling Immortal Sect, those senior brothers had never said such heartwarming words to her.
Basically, if something happened, you had to shoulder it yourself, and if something happened, you had to help.
He even praised her for having a very good rtionship with her senior brother and sister.
If they were willing to take the me for each other, it could be said that they had a good rtionship.
Every time, she was forced to take the me. What was the good rtionship between senior and junior brothers?
Anyway, she was often the scapegoat.
When she came to the Demon Realm, although she did not receive any good treatment at the beginning, these senior brothers were more normal and would not bully the weak.
It was good for everyone to get along without disturbing each other.
Thank you, senior brother. There seems to be a smell of blood on senior brothers body. Is senior brother injured?
MO Ruyue asked with concern.
Ye Yunfeng lowered his head and nced at his clothes. His voice was casual and cold. Its fine. I can handle it myself.
When he was killing monsters, he was identally stained with the blood of monsters.
It was not a big problem.
After Ye Yunfeng left, MO Ruyue passed by Xia Zhixings house and saw Xia Zhixing standing upside down in the courtyard.
His muscles were exposed, and his abs were eight packs. His wheat-colored skin looked very healthy, and his muscles were very smooth.
However, there was a very obvious scar on his chest, making him look very ferocious.
Xia Zhixing saw MO Ruyue standing at the door. She stood up immediately and took a deep breath.
Junior Sister Ruyue.
He walked to the door with joy in his eyes.
Did Junior Sister Ruyue pass by to see him?
In fact, MO Ruyue just wanted to take a shortcut back. She happened to see Xia Zhixing standing upside down in the courtyard.
Usually, she would not stop when she passed by.
Seeing Xia Zhixinge out, MO Ruyue could only greet her.
Senior Brother, what are you doing?
His gaze swept over Xia Zhixings strong body. His muscles looked like they could withstand a beating.
Xia Zhixing smiled and said, Nothing much. Im just practicing. Junior Sister, did you learn martial arts from the demon today?
Yes,
How is it?
l feel fine. 1 still have to go back and practice well. Practice makes perfect.
MO Ruyue saw the scar on Xia Zhixings chest. Senior Brother, your scar looks old.
It must have been very painful at that time. It might have hurt her life.
The smile on Xia Zhixings face faded. She looked down at the scar on her chest and said with a heavy voice, It has indeed been many years.
He didnt continue, There were some things that he should know. There was no need for everyone to know.
Then, Xia Zhixing changed the topic and said to MO Ruyue,Ruyue, I heard that theres a ck-hearted tree bearing fruit on Bird Shed Mountain. Shall we go to Bird Shed Mountain to pick ck-hearted fruits?
ck Heart Fruit?
Nio Ruyue thought for a moment. Although the ck Heart Fruit was not a rare top-grade fruit, it was still worth a considerable price on the market because it could boost ones cultivation.
What she wanted the most now was a storage ring. However, she did not have the money to buy one.
Thats right. If we dont go early, the ck Heart Fruit will be plucked by others.
Xia Zhixing had a good impression of MO Ruyue, so she wanted to bring MO Ruyue along to pick the ck Heart Fruit.
Otherwise, he would have gone alone long ago.
When are you going?
MO Ruyue asked.
He still had to find the Demon Lord to practice tomorrow, so he had toe back before tomorrow.
We will set off tomorrow at thetest. If everything goes well, we can return to the Demon Realm before sunset.
Theres no time to lose. How about we go over now?
She didnt have time tomorrow. Since it wasnt toote yet, she could go pick some ck heart fruits.
Anyway, he had nothing to do..
Chapter 676 - 676: Provoke!
Chapter 676: Provoke!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Now?
Xia Zhixing didnt expect MO Ruyue to be so enthusiastic.
He was slightly surprised.
Yes, now.
Alright, Ill go change my clothes and set off in a while,
Xia Zhixing turned around and went back to get her clothes.
After a while, the two of them rode to Bird Poop Mountain.
Qi Shaoyus eyes darkened when he saw MO Ruyue leave with Xia Zhixing. He then quickly rode his horse and chased after her.
Xia Zhixing looked back at Qi Shaoyu, who was following behind her, wondering why this guy was here!
MO Ruyue also noticed it and shouted at Xia Zhixing, Senior Brother, the person behind is Sixth Senior Brother. Should we wait for Sixth Senior Brother?
Theres no need to wait. Maybe your Sixth Senior Brother is just going the same way as us, but to a different ce.
Is that so?
MO Ruyue was skeptical. Why did she feel that Fifth Brother was slightly hostile towards Sixth Brother?
Fifth Senior Brother will not lie to you.
Alright then.
Before the sun set, MO Ruyue and Xia Zhixing arrived at the foot of Bird Poop
Mountain.
Bird feces mountain was called bird feces mountain because it was particrly strange among so many mountains. It looked like feces, so it was called bird feces mountain.
As for why it was not called other sh * t, MO Ruyue was not too sure.
Why are you two so fast? Ive been chasing you!
Qi Shaoyu got off the horse, looking a little disheveled, but it didnt affect his appearance.
What are you doing here?
Xia Zhixing didnt wee him. Although they were brothers and got along well, their rtionship wasnt always so harmonious.
Even the best siblings in the family, who were usually very good, would often have conflicts.
Qi Shaoyu got off his horse and tied the rope to a tree.You cante to Bird
Poop Mountain alone. If you cane, why cant l?
You dont understand. Why are you learning from me?
Xia Zhixing stared at Qi Shaoyu with an unfriendly gaze. The air seemed to have a trace of smoke.
MO Ruyue looked left and right. She had never seen her two Senior Brothers throw a tantrum before.
He had always thought that his senior brothers in the Demon World had a good rtionship, but it seemed that this was not the case.
Senior brothers
Shut up!
Shut up!
The two Senior Brothers shouted at the same time to stop MO Ruyue fromforting her.
MO Ruyue looked innocent.
Xia Zhixing, do you really think that you are my senior brother just because I call you senior brother?
Qi Shaoyu said coldly.
Both of them were about the same age, but Xia Zhixing came to the Demon Realm earlier.
Xia Zhixing wasnt used to Qi Shaoyus temper. She said sarcastically, Im the one who begged you to call me Senior Brother?
When a certain someone first entered the Demon Realm, it was a certain someone who kept calling him senior brother!
Qi Shaoyus expression was getting worse and worse, as if he was about to explode.
Xia Zhixing, dont go too far. Do you think I want to call you senior brother?
l dont want you to call me senior brother.
Although MO Ruyue was standing beside them, the two Senior Brothers seemed to treat her as air.
She had been in the Demon Realm for so long, but she had never encountered such a lineup.
Until now, she still didnt know why her two senior brothers were bickering.
He felt very inexplicable.
MO Ruyue looked at the two of them and finally decided not to interfere in their affairs.
If she wanted to fight, she would fight. Anyway, she would not help.
They were all his senior brothers, and both his hands and back were flesh. It would not be good to help anyone.
The two of them hadnt noticed MO Ruyues departure. They were ready to fight at the foot of the mountain.
The sound of the chirping of the little worms could be heard on the bird shit mountain. MO Ruyue climbed up step by step. Vaguely, he seemed to hear someone talking.
However, he did not hear it very clearly.
It seemed that someone had already arrived, and it was just a little above.
Thus, MO Ruyue quickened her pace. She had to find the ck Heart Fruit as soon as possible.
At the foot of the mountain, Qi Shaoyu and Xia Zhixing came back to their senses and realized that MO Ruyue had disappeared.
Wheres Junior Sister?
Xia Zhixings face darkened. She looked around but did not see MO Ruyue.
Qi Shaoyu nced at Xia Zhixing and snorted.
Then, he headed up the mountain. Ruyue must have gone up ahead of time.
Seeing Qi Shaoyu enter the mountain, Xia Zhixing quickly followed.
She was too busy bickering with Qi Shaoyu to notice that Ruyue had already entered the mountain alone.
At this moment, MO Ruyue had already found the legendary ck Heart Fruit.
There were nearly ten ck fruits on a small tree.
Under the light of the setting sun, she saw the appearance of the ck heart fruit. It was the same color as the snake fruit and had an alluring luster.
He wanted to take a bite and see what it tasted like.
Just as MO Ruyue was about to pick the ck Heart Fruit, a stone was thrown at her.
She hurriedly dodged the rock, or else the rock would have hit her hand.
He looked in the direction of the stone with an unhappy expression.
Three men and a woman appeared in her line of sight.
Who are you? The ck Heart Fruit is ours.
The man in the lead red at MO Ruyue fiercely.
MO Ruyue reached out and plucked a ck Heart Fruit, then ate it in front of the four of them.
You
The man didnt expect that the woman in front of him wasnt afraid. Instead, she picked a ck Heart Fruit and started eating it.
He ate the ck Heart Fruit openly in front of them.
Where did this stupid girle from? She actually ate the ck Heart Fruit in front of us. Are you tired of living?
The woman also berated MO Ruyue. She was very dissatisfied with MO Ruyue!s behavior.
This was clearly a tant provocation!
MO Ruyue shook her head and clicked her tongue. It doesnt even taste as good as the snake fruit.
She didnt seem to care about the four people in front of her. She didnt even look at them.
Stupid girl, the ck Heart Fruit is ours. Who told you to pick it?
The woman took a few steps toward MO Ruyue, her hand tightly gripping her sword.
If this woman didnt listen to her advice, then she could only kill this stinky girl who stole the ck Heart Fruit.
MO Ruyue raised her head and threw the unfinished ck Heart Fruit on the ground.
Oh, what a joke. How do you prove that the ck Heart Fruit is yours?
She was the one who discovered the ck Heart Fruit first, but these shameless fellows actually said that the ck Heart Fruit was theirs.
They had never seen such a ridiculous thing.
Although there were many people on the other side, MO Ruyue was not afraid.
Damned girl, I advise you not to be ungrateful and leave this ce as soon as possible. Otherwise, we wont let you off!
The woman said coldly. She didnt expect that someone woulde to pick the ck Heart Fruit before them.
Fortunately, there was only one person on the other side, while they had four people on their side. It was more than enough to deal with them.
Senior Sister, why are you talking to her? Just kill her. No one will find out if you kill someone in the wilderness.
Another man said impatiently.
So what if they found the ck Heart Fruit before them? Whoever was stronger would be able to dominate everything.
Who are you? You actually want to kill people?
MO Ruyue was curious about where these people came from. How could they talk about killing people so casually?
As the Saintess of the Demon World, she did not dare to say such words casually.
There was no reason to kill the other party if they had no grudge against him. Killing someone without a reason was a lunatic.
Youre just a little brat. You dont deserve to know who we are.
The womans eyes were filled with disdain.
Then, she drew her sword and shed at MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue lost control of her body and caught the de with her bare hands.
Damn it, his body waspletely out of control.
Previously, when her Demon Venerable Master was practicing the sword, she did not catch the white de with her bare hands. She thought that this skill had already lost its effect.
Unexpectedly
Chapter 677 - 677: Fatal Weakness
Chapter 677: Fatal Weakness
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
He saw a woman in purple holding a sword, and the de was intercepted by a woman in ck.
The scene seemed a little strange. Who are you? You can actually take my sword!
The woman looked incredulous.
Usually, very few people could catch her sword. In the immortal sect, other than the master and the elders, very few people could catch her sword.
The few men beside him also widened their eyes at this scene.
This stupid girl actually caught Eldest Senior Sisters sword so easily!
What kind of background was this?
Senior Sister Sisters sword was made of ck iron and weighed 300 pounds!
MO Ruyue looked embarrassed. She didnt want to take this womans sword, but she couldnt control her body.
Im me, a different kind of human being!
Trying to snatch the ck Heart Fruit from us? Go to hell!
The other man also drew his sword and shed at MO Ruyue ferociously.
The ck figure shed, and MO Ruyue caught the white de with her bare hands again.
The scene fell silent again.
Catch, catch!
The four of them stared at the woman in disbelief.
He caught the de once again. Who was this woman?
The man wanted to take his sword away, but he found that he could not move it at all.
How did this woman do it?
MO Ruyue let go of the mans sword. She raised her chin and shot a contemptuous nce at the four of them.
You think you can snatch the ck Heart Fruit from me? You overestimate yourselves!
However, the four of them did not give up.
You only have two hands, another man said. You can only catch one sword at a time. Lets see how you can catch the sword with the four of us.
Eldest Senior Sister felt that this method was feasible. Unless this woman in front of her had a clone, it was absolutely impossible for her to catch their swords.
The four of them came to a decision and prepared to attack MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue silently took out a brick from her back. She really couldnt catch the swords of four people at the same time.
At this moment, two figures appeared in everyones sight.
Qi Shaoyu and Xia Zhixing shielded MO Ruyue behind them at the same time, their eyes unhappily sweeping across the three men and one woman in front of them.
They had already heard their conversation.
You want to deal with my junior sister? Have you asked me?
Xia Zhixing raised his eyebrows, and a murderous intent was hidden in his cold eyes.
Fortunately, he had arrived early. Otherwise, Junior Sister definitely wouldnt be able to deal with these four guys.
Qi Shaoyu nced at Xia Zhixing from the corner of his eyes, lifted his chin slightly and said,Where did you get the guts to bully my junior sister?
Big Sister looked at the two men who suddenly appeared and felt that things had be a little difficult.
He didnt expect that brat to have helpers.
Fortunately, the other party only had three people while they had four. In terms of numbers, they could be considered to have won.
l advise the two of you to take your junior sisters and leave this ce quickly.
The ck Heart Fruit is ours. Otherwise, dont me us for being rude to
Big Sister had no intention of retreating.
How could he give up the ck Heart Fruit that was in his hands?
MO Ruyue immediately retorted, The four of you should leave. I was the one who found the ck Heart Fruit first.
Because he heard the voices of these people, he knew their purpose.
Therefore, she took another route to speed up her search for the ck Heart Fruit. Finally, she found it before these people.
Firste, first served. The ck Heart Fruit was naturally hers.
However, she didnt expect these shameless people to make her give up the ck Heart Fruit because of the number of people.
How could there be such a good thing in the world?
Fortunately, she still had two of her senior brothers. Three against four, they were at a disadvantage in terms of numbers, but not necessarily in terms of quality.
A bunch of shameless people, pui!
MO Ruyue spat at the few people in front of her.
He had seen shameless people before, but he had never seen such shameless people.
In fact, even if MO Ruyue had not discovered the ck Heart Fruit first, they would not have given it away.
After all, they were the people of the Demon Realm that others said were unreasonable and domineering.
Upon hearing MO Ruyues words, Qi Shaoyus thin lips curled into a nonchnt smile. Not to mention that my junior sister discovered the ck Heart Fruit first, even if she didnt, we wouldnt have given such a good spirit fruit to someone else.
The sky gradually darkened, and the howls of wild wolves sounded in the distant forest.
Neither side wanted to give up the ck Heart Fruit to the other.
Eldest Senior Sisters expression darkened. Seeing that the sky was getting darker, she thought of a good idea.
How about this, we split the ck Heart Fruits on the tree in half. This way, you wont lose anything, and we wont lose anything either. We can also avoid a war, killing two birds with one stone.
They hade here for the ck Heart Fruit. They did not expect that there would be other people here to pick the ck Heart Fruit.
This method was definitely a very good one.
No one could think of a better and fairer way than this.
However, MO Ruyue did not want to give up. Why should I split the ck
Heart Fruits with you?
If not, we can only have a contest!
Eldest Senior Sister stared coldly at MO Ruyue.
He only felt that this woman was very annoying.
Who has ever heard that the people of the Demon Realm will divide things fairly with others?
Qi Shaoyu raised his eyebrows and mocked.
In any case, the demon world was full of bad characters, so he naturally had to y the role of a bad person well. Only then could he live up to his reputation.
The Demon Realm!
These two words stirred up ripples in the hearts of the four people.
Eldest Senior Sister took half a step back and widened her eyes. Her lips trembled. Youre from the Demon Realm?
The three junior brothers also took half a step back.
The people of the Demon Realm were not good people.
Dont we look like were from the Demon Realm?
MO Ruyue blinked her beautiful and clear eyes, looking harmless.
This image had nothing to do with the bad reputation of the demon world.
Who would have thought that such a beautiful girl was actually ackey of the demon world?
Eldest Senior Sisters heart trembled and she said coldly,ln that case, all the more I cant let you evil people of the Demon Realm off. Today, 1 will enforce justice on behalf of the heavens and kill all of youckeys of the Demon Realm.
After saying that, Eldest Senior Sister led her three Junior Brothers to attack MO Ruyue and the others.
Three against four, MO Ruyue caught the de with her bare hands at the critical moment and controlled one of the mens sword.
Qi Shaoyu and Xia Zhixing were entangled with the other three.
There was a forest all around. Leaves fell to the ground and branches were mercilessly cut off.
The strength of these people in front of him was not considered to be wrong. They were not as weak as the people from the Jade Pure Immortal Sect.
This was especially so for the eldest senior sister. The sword in her hand actually brought with it a strong sword wind.
If this were to happen, the game would probably take a lot of damage.
Damn it, let go of my sword!
The man cursed in a low voice. He could not draw his sword at all. Was this womans hand made of iron?
He lifted his leg and wanted to lift MO Ruyue. Since he couldnt pull the sword away, he would kick this woman away.
However, his method was useless. MO Ruyue nimbly dodged it.
Little guy, watch how I kick you.
MO Ruyue snorted and kicked the mans crotch.
l know your fatal weakness is here!
She had a smug smile on her face.
The man let out a miserable cry, and then his voice disappeared because he was in so much pain that he did not even have the strength to cry out.
He closed his legs, released his sword, and fell to the ground.
He felt like he was about to die.
The pain of heaven and earth shattering
Chapter 678 - 678: You Don’t Believe In Me?
Chapter 678: You Dont Believe In Me?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When the few people who were fighting saw the man on the ground, they all felt pain three inches below their abdomen.
Xia Zhixing and Qi Shaoyu broke out in cold sweat.
Ruyues kick almost sent the man away.
Only a man could understand this pain.
One of the four was taken care of, and the remaining three hurriedly stopped.
Big Sister looked at the three people in front of her coldly and quickly gave the order to retreat. Lets retreat!
Although the two men were not very strong, they did not have an advantage in a fight.
Moreover, these were people from the Demon Realm. She was worried that these cunning people from the Demon Realm would have reinforcements.
The two junior brothers picked up the man with the sad balls and left.
At this moment, the sky had already darkened.
At least they know whats good for them.
MO Ruyue snorted.
He turned around and smiled at his two senior brothers. The ck Heart
Fruit is ours now.
Okay, lets go back quickly after picking the ck Heart Fruit. Its gettingte.
Xia Zhixing said as she reached out to pick the ck heart fruit. These ck heart fruits could be eaten by herself or sold in the market.
MO Ruyue asked curiously as she plucked the ck Heart Fruits,Speaking of which, which sect did those guys juste from? I forgot to ask.
It doesnt matter which immortal sect they are from. They are enemies with our Demon Realm anyway. It doesnt matter which immortal sect they are from.
Qi Shaoyu didnt know which sect they were from.
Soon, the three of them had picked all the ck Heart Fruits on the tree.
MO Ruyue picked five, and the rest were picked by Qi Shaoyu and Xia Zhixing.
After plucking the ck Heart Fruit, they went down the mountain.
Eh, where did our horses go?
MO Ruyue looked around. She could still see her surroundings clearly under the moonlight.
Three horses, none of them were there.
Could it have been ridden away by those guys just now?
She seemed to have thought of something and her face was filled with anger.
At this moment, Qi Shaoyu frowned and said,Im afraid its not that simple.
What do you mean?
Dont you smell the scent of blood in the air?
Upon hearing Qi Shaoyus words, MO Ruyue sniffed the air. There really is.
Xia Zhixing pointed at the ck object not far away, Im afraid our horses have been eaten by the monsters.
Then how are we going back?
There was still a long distance from here to the Demon Realm. It would probably be around midnight when they walked back.
We can only walk back. Qi Shaoyu sighed.
Thus, the three of them walked back.
The horse had already been eaten by the spiritual monster. There was no vige or shop in this ce, so there was no way to find any means of
transportation.
MO Ruyue was exhausted when she walked back.
Senior brothers, Ill go back and rest first.
He still had to meet the Demon Venerable Master tomorrow. If he didnt have a good rest, how could he concentrate on practicing his sword technique?
Go ahead.
Go ahead.
Qi Shaoyu and Xia Zhixing spoke almost at the same time.
The two of them looked at each other and saw disdain in each others eyes.
After MO Ruyue disappeared from their sight, the two of them walked back to their respective homes.
No one was willing to put down their pride and admit defeat.
Both of them felt that there was no reason for them to give in to each other. No, what could they do?
MO Ruyue ced the ck Heart Fruit on the table, washed up, and prepared to sleep.
He could faintly hear the cooing of pigeons.
When she opened her eyes, she saw a messenger pigeon by the window.
Why were there pigeons? Wasnt it already gone?
This kind of messenger pigeon could not be discovered by the people of the Demon Realm. If they used it as an excuse, she would be finished.
Then, she became a traitor of the demon world and was turned into a human pig by Jing Xichen.
At the thought of this, MO Ruyues sleepiness suddenly disappeared. She quickly got up and brought the pigeon in.
Looking at the creed on the pigeons leg, his expression immediately became solemn.
At this moment, there was movement outside. MO Ruyue was so frightened that she quickly erased the note.
MO Ruyue did not dare to make a sound when she saw a row of patrolling disciples passing by her house.
His heart beat faster. This feeling of being a spy was really not good. He felt that he could be discovered at any time.
Every time she received a message from the immortal sect, it would make her feel uneasy.
Nio Ruyue heaved a long sigh of relief when the footsteps gradually faded away. She then released the pigeon.
She didnt want to roast pigeons in the middle of the night.
The content of the creed was to meet her at the usual ce at noon tomorrow. Why is that damned Lan Qi looking for me?
MO Ruyue muttered. She still had to find her Demon Venerable Master to practice her swordsmanship tomorrow!
It seemed that he had to find an excuse to see Lan Qi.
The next morning, MO Ruyue brought Ghost Thoughts and the two ck Heart Fruits to the cultivation ce.
When she passed by Ye Yunfengs room, she gave him one.
The remaining one was prepared to be given to his Demon Venerable Master.
Good morning, Master.
Nio Ruyue greeted him warmly.
However, the cold and aloof Demon Venerable Master did not even lift his eyelids, not even giving a damn about MO Ruyue.
Nio Ruyue wasnt surprised at all by the Demon Venerable Masters attitude.
Master, this ck Heart Fruit is for you. Yesterday, I went to Bird Poop Mountain with Senior Brother Xia and Senior Brother Qi to pick it. I spent a lot of effort to pick one. I want to give this one to master to thank you for your teachings.
MO Ruyue presented the ck Heart Fruit with both hands as if it was a treasure, her mouth full of ttering words.
ttery would not wear off.
Sometimes, it was better to have a sweet mouth.
Ming Sihan nced at the ck Heart Fruit. It was useless to him.
Are you using the ck Heart Fruit to mock this venerable self for being ck-hearted?
He deliberately misinterpreted MO Ruyue!s meaning. No, no, how could I do such a treasonous thing?
MO Ruyue shook her head and quickly denied it.
This ck Heart Fruit is just a gift from this disciple to show respect to
Master.
This man was thinking too much.
Even if she had ten guts, she would not dare to mock the dignified Demon Lord of the Demon World.
At least for now, she didnt dare to. She didnt have the strength to mock him.
Its tasteless to eat and a pity to throw it away.
Ming Sihans evaluation of the ck Heart Fruit.
Do you still remember what I taught you yesterday? he asked MO Ruyue.
I will never forget what Master taught me.
Then lets continue practicing.
Yes.
MO Ruyue put down the ck Heart Fruit and started practicing her Ghost Sense.
Ming Sihan was lying on his side in his bed with a bamboo scroll in his hand. His brows were sometimes furrowed and sometimes rxed.
From the beginning to the end, he did not even nce at MO Ruyue.
Dont mess up your breathing. Use softness to ovee hardness andbine hardness and softness.
Ming Sihan lowered his head and pointed.
MO Ruyue nced at Ming Sihan and realized that he was not looking at her, but he knew the ws of her swordsmanship.
This is the simplest and most basic of the Neb Sword Techniques. If you canpletely master the Neb Sword Technique, it will not be difficult for you to defeat a Golden Core cultivator with your Qi Refinement cultivation. Ming Sihan said casually.
This was a unique sword technique that he had developed. He had originally wanted to use it himself and discover that this sword technique was more suitable for women.
Is it really that powerful?
This was the first time MO Ruyue had heard of such a saying. She had thought that the higher ones cultivation base was, the more powerful the cultivator would be. You dont believe in my words?
Yes, I do.
How could MO Ruyue not believe it?
Then, she thought of something and asked,Master, I have a question that I dont know if I should ask.
If you dont know whether its appropriate to ask, then dont ask.
But I cant help it,
Then ask.
I want to know what cultivation level Master is at now, can he defeat the sect master of Xuanling Immortal Sect?
Who was more powerful, the Demon Venerable or the sect master of Xuanling Immortal Sect?
Moreover, the Demon Venerable seemed to have some rtionship with the sect master of Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Dont you know my Nascent Soul cultivation? As for whether he could defeat the sect master of Xuanling Immortal Sect, he was also very curious. He would know when he went to Xuanling Immortal Sect to try that man next time..
Chapter 679 - 679: The Saintess
Chapter 679: The Saintess
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue was about to ask something when the demon chide Practice your sword properly. What nonsense are you spouting? With your current cultivation, who can you beat?
Oh.
MO Ruyue replied. She could not defeat anyone with her cultivation base, but she could still fight against many people with the system.
However, he could not say such words.
It was almost noon, and MO Ruyue was a little absent-minded.
Whats wrong with you now?
His absent-mindedness was discovered by his Demon Venerable Master again.
MO Ruyue beat him at his own game and clutched her stomach with a pained expression. Master, my stomach feels ufortable. I want to poop.
Ming Sihan showed an extremely disgusted expression. It didnt seem appropriate for a girl to say such words, right?
He clenched his fists and pressed them against his high nose bridge.
Master, you dont have to be so disgusted. I havent pooped yet.
MO Ruyue looked helpless. Her Demon Venerable Masters expression made it seem as if she had pooped on herself.
Its really frustrating for me to say that
Hurry up and go. Come back in the afternoon.
Yes, thank you, Master.
After saying that, MO Ruyue left the training courtyard.
Ming Sihan watched MO Ruyue leave. Why did he feel like he was being deceived?
At this time, Ye Yunfeng came to the courtyard and called out respectfully,
Demon Venerable.
What is it?
Ive already investigated the matter that you asked me to investigate.
Ye Yunfeng lowered his head, not staring at the demon.
Tell me.
Ming Sihan raised his eyes slightly and looked at the young man who had grown up.
She looked quite simr to that man.
Ye Yunfeng reported all the information he had investigated to Ming Sihan.
l understand. You can handle this kind of thing yourself. Our Demon Realms reputation is already bad enough anyway, and I dont mind getting worse.
Ming Sihan said indifferently.
Yes. Ye Yunfeng already knew what to do in his heart.
With the Demon Venerables words, he did not have to worry about anything
Is there anything else?
When he saw the ck Heart Fruit on the table, his eyes froze.
Ming Sihan followed Ye Yunfengs line of sight and looked at the ck Heart Fruit. He said casually,lf you want it, take it. This ck Heart Fruit is of no use to me.
No, Junior Sister Ruyue also gave me a ck Heart Fruit. Junior Sister Ruyue was really too good at taking care of people.
Is that so?
Ming Sihan frowned. If he remembered correctly, that woman said that this was the only ck heart fruit she picked.
MO Ruyue gave him the only ck Heart Fruit as a gift.
But now, Ye Yunfeng said that he had also received a ck Heart Fruit from
Nio Ruyue.
What a little liar.
Previously, he thought that although this girl was a little stupid, at least she had some filial piety.
He didnt say anything, but he was quite happy in his heart.
Now that he heard Ye Yunfeng say this, Ming Sihan looked at the ck Heart
Fruit even more unsightly.
Ye Yunfeng felt that there was something wrong with the demon and said,Demon Venerable, this subordinate wants to go down and get busy.
Go ahead.
Ming Sihans tone was a little colder.
MO Ruyue, that liar!
At this moment, MO Ruyue wore her mask and went to her usual ce.
When she saw Lan Qi, she couldnt help but sneeze twice and almost sprayed the mask off her face.
Lan Qi looked at MO Ruyue and raised his eyes slightly. He sneered, Youve finally put on your mask.
Otherwise, he wouldnt have the appetite to eat after seeing Mo Ruyues face..
MO Ruyue did not take Lan Qis words to heart.
Eldest Senior Brother, why are you looking for me? Recently, the Devil Realm is heavily guarded. I cant go out for too long!!
She asked directly without beating around the bush.
There was a hint of coldness on his face.
You cante out for too long or you dont want toe out?
Why would Eldest Senior Brother say that? I cant wait to return to Xuanling Immortal Sect immediately.
MO Ruyues voice was full of sincerity.
Lan Qi snorted. Whats going on here? Ive sent you a pigeon many times, but you didnt reply or send a pigeon back!
Eldest Senior Brother, have you ever written a creed for me? I dont know. I havent received anything these days, nor have I seen any pigeons. 1 was still wondering if Eldest Brother had forgotten about it.
MO Ruyue pretended to be innocent, indicating that she did not know anything about the pigeon.
Lan Qi scrutinized MO Ruyue. Youd better not y any tricks. If you dare to betray the immortal sect, youll be making an enemy of the entire Xuanling Immortal Sect. Ill let the people of the Devil World know that youre a spy sent by our immortal sect. When that happens, both the immortal sect and the
Devil World will hunt you down!
He had plenty of ways to deal with MO Ruyue.
He wanted MO Ruyue to listen to him obediently.
Senior brother, youre worrying too much. The immortal sect is so good to me, how could 1 betray them?
MO Ruyue hated being threatened the most.
It was obvious that Lan Qi had done what she hated the most.
She was indeed not Lan Qis match now, and it was not good to fight him to the death here.
After all, she still wanted to live well. It was not easy for her to climb from a nameless disciple to the position of Saintess. Now, she was the only disciple of the Demon Lord.
Its best that you wont betray the immortal sect. Otherwise, you wont be able to bear the consequences.
Lan Qi snorted. He was quite satisfied with MO Ruyues attitude.
He wanted MO Ruyue to know that he had something on her.
Is there any news on the whereabouts of the Heaven-cleaving Sword? Lan Qi asked.
No, I havent.
Useless thing, what have you been doing for so long? There wasnt even any news about the Heaven-cleaving Sword?
Lan Qi immediately cursed.
The matter of the Seven-colored Fire Seed had already made him very angry, but now he realized that MO Ruyue hadnt done anything. How could he not be angry?
MO Ruyue muttered in her heart,lf you need it, go find it yourself.
The Demon Realm has appointed a new Saintess. Who is that Saintess? Lan Qi asked again.
Other than the people of the Demon Realm, no one else seemed to know what the legendary Saintess looked like.
That Saintess is not simple. She was selected by the disciples of the Demon Realm. She is beautiful and can be called the number one beauty of the Demon Realm. If you ask me, it is not an exaggeration to say that the Saintess can be called the number one beauty of the Nine Regions.
Is she that beautiful?
Of course shes beautiful. The Demon Lords taste cant be too bad. Her figure is especially good, her front and back are curvy, and her skin is whiter than snow.
Listening to MO Ruyues description of the Saintess, Lan Qi was a little curious about her.
Then, he asked,Whats the Saints cultivation level?
Ive never fought with the Saintess before, so I dont know if shes powerful or not. But the fact that the Saintess wiped out the entire Jade Pure Celestial Sect alone is enough to prove that shes powerful.
Hmph! Lan Qi snorted coldly. The small Jade Pure Immortal Sect is just an unrated immortal sect. Its far inferior to our Xuanling Immortal Sect. Whats there to be surprised about when the Holy Maiden annihted the entire Jade Pure Immortal Sect.
Yes, yes, yes. Senior Brother is right. Yuqing Immortals goalball doesnt count.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but roll her eyes.
This mans real body was Ling Rene
Lan Qi did not dare to stay there for long. He reminded,Youd better find out about the Heaven-cleaving Sword as soon as possible.
Senior Brother, dont worry. Leave it to me.Youre dreaming. Nio Ruyue agreed on the surface, but her heart was indeed silent.
And remember to reply in time!
Senior Brother, I think its better not to contact each other in the future. After all, Capricorns security is getting tighter and tighter.
Replying to your message? Dream on..
Chapter 680 - 680: Compassion
Chapter 680: Compassion
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Lan Qj pursed his lips. How am I supposed to find you if I dont contact you?
Lets do it this way. Every month, every fifteen, senior martial brother, youe here at noon, every three oclock, every time. When I donte, you leave. This means that I dont have any news. As long as I have any news, I wille here to meet you on the fifteenth at noon, every three oclock
MO Ruyue said.
As long as she came once, she would lose.
Seeing Lan Qjs thoughtful expression, MO Ruyue continued to bluff him. Senior Brother, what are you still thinking about? This is the only way to ensure that my identity wont be exposed. If Im exposed, the Demon Realm wont let me off, and neither will Xuanling Immortal Sect.
If my identity hadnt been leaked, 1 could have been a spy in the Demon
Realm. One day, the two of us would have worked together to destroy the Demon Realm, and we would have been the heroes who had eliminated the Demon Realm.
When the timees, if the sect master is happy, he might let you be an elder.
Lan Qi nodded repeatedly, feeling that what MO Ruyue said made sense.
The position of an elder was very tempting.
I didnt expect you to be so smart after not seeing you for a short time.
Your idea is quite good, he praised.
Idiot! MO Ruyue cursed in her heart, then happily said,Does Senior Brother agree with my method?
Yes, I agree. From now on, Ill be waiting for you here on the 15th of every month.
Alright, Senior Brother, our hard work will definitely not be in vain.
MO Ruyue had a determined look on her face.
We will be heroes in everyones eyes in the future.
Heroes only need one, one
This world did not need so many heroes, not to mention that MO Ruyue was just a woman.
Women should just take care of their husbands and children. Why should theypete with men for heroes?
Alright, you should go back quickly. Dont expose your identity. You still have to bring back useful information for us.
Lan Qj waved his hand and asked MO Ruyue to leave.
Alright, Senior Brother, Ill be leaving first. You should hurry back too.
After saying that, MO Ruyue turned around and left with a mocking smile on her face.
Lan Qi would never have thought that she had already betrayed him, right?
MO Ruyue took off her mask and prepared to go back to eat something. She would go to the Demon Lords ce to practice her swordsmanship in the afternoon.
At this moment, Shen Yunyan appeared in MO Ruyues line of sight. She smiled coldly. Senior Sister, you just came back from there. What did you do?
MO Ruyue ignored him and walked around Shen Yunyan.
Shen Yunyan did not give up and followed MO Ruyues footsteps. She continued,Senior Sister should be at the Demon Lords ce at this time, but she came back from there. Could it be that she went there to meet someone?
Cant I go over there to shit?
MO Ruyue snapped back. Shen Yunyan probably did not know who she had gone to see.
A womans words are so vulgar. Its really an eye-opener.
Im a vulgar person to begin with. Whats wrong with saying vulgar words? Or do you not need to poop? All youre doing is taking food?
You Shen Yunyans face turned pale.
Pooping is just an excuse. The toilet isnt over there! What are you trying to hide?
There must be some secret about this woman.
MO Ruyue stopped in her tracks and turned around to re at Shen Yunyan unhappily. What? You want to interfere when Im taking a dump? Isnt it popr to poop in the wild these days?
Do you have any ethics? What if someone steps on you when you poop outside?
Shen Yunyan snorted. No matter what MO Ruyue did, she wanted to refute her.
As long as MO Ruyue was breathing, she would be wrong.
It was because MO Ruyue had snatched away everything that should have belonged to her, and she was even favored by the Demon Lord.
Therefore, she had a grudge against MO Ruyue.
Youre really a busybody. If you really have nothing to do, go find an electronics factory to work! Its fine if you go to pick manure and water the vegetables. Dont put all your thoughts on me. Otherwise, Ill think that you like me and thats why you think about me everywhere.
Couldnt this woman find something to do?
He had to make things difficult for her!
MO Ruyue, in your dreams. How could I possibly like you? I wish I could chase you out of the Demon Realm.
Shen Yunyan immediately refuted.
She only hated MO Ruyue, but she didnt like her.
This woman was too self-righteous.
An exnation is a cover-up, and a cover-up is the truth.
Seeing Shen Yunyans angry look, MO Ruyue felt that it was a little funny.
She didnt know how she had offended Shen Yunyan, but Shen Yunyan always made things difficult for her.
She walked towards her room, ignoring Shen Yunyan.
However, Shen Yunyan did not give her the chance to leave. She reached out and stopped her.
Nio Ruyue grabbed Shen Yunyans hand and flung it away. She warned, Shen Yunyan, you better watch your eyes. I am not only your Senior Sister now, but also the Devil Worlds Saintess. You cant afford to offend me!
Shen Yunyan staggered and fell to the ground from the force of MO Ruyues throw. She red at MO Ruyue with hatred. This damned MO Ruyue actually tripped her.
What did you do to Sister Yun Yan?
At this moment, a voice was heard. Li Zeyans face was filled with anger.
He walked over and pulled Shen Yunyan up from the ground. He asked with concern, Sister Yun Yan, are you alright?
Did it hurt?
Shen Yunyan listened to Li Zeyans concern and was secretly happy. She had not wasted her brainwashing of Li Zeyan these past few days.
Her acting skills exploded. She raised her hand to wipe the tears from the corners of her eyes and not the first time anyway. It doesnt hurt.
Youll get used to it.
Has she always bullied you like this?
Li Zeyan shot a nce at MO Ruyue, his eyes filled with disbelief.
He had thought that MO Ruyue was a gentle woman, but he had not expected her to be so vicious.
He wont be like this in front of others. He will only be like this in private.
Shen Yunyan said with a wronged expression. She lowered her head and looked sad.
She even hid behind Li Zeyan as if she was afraid of MO Ruyues revenge.
Dont the other people in the Demon Realm know that she is such a two-faced woman?
Li Zeyan was a little indignant.
This woman was actually so good at pretending.
Who would believe it?
Shen Yunyan was soft and weak, and her tear-stained face deeply aroused the sympathy of the opposite sex.
MO Ruyue, youre really too much. I thought you were really a good person, but I didnt expect
Li Zeyan turned his head and reprimanded MO Ruyue.
He felt that he had been deceived by MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue, who had been silent the whole time, listened to Shen Yunyan and Li Zeyans conversation. Her beautiful face had a smile on it as she pped her hands casually. Awesome, awesome, awesome. Shen Yunyan, who has been twisting right and wrong and lying all the time, is really a person who has been stabbed in the butt by a knife. Its a pity that you dont have to act with your acting skills. If I were a director, I would definitely arrange a Hollywood female lead for you.
Shen Yunyan could understand the first part of the sentence, but she did not understand the second part.
After all, she was really making it up. When MO Ruyue picked her out, her face turned green and red.
Hmph, I wont argue with you anymore. Brother Zeyan, lets go,
In any case, she just needed to make Li Zeyan think that MO Ruyue was a woman who didnt mean what she said.
Although MO Ruyue was the one who brought Li Zeyan back, she was most pleased and proud of the fact that she had managed to turn Li Zeyan over to her side to fight against MO Ruyue.
It must have been hard to watch the person I brought back get close to someone else, right?
Chapter 681 - 681: Are You Sure You Want to Follow Me?
Chapter 681: Are You Sure You Want to Follow Me?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Seeing that Shen Yunyan was not going to pursue the matter, Li Zeyan said with a firm look in his eyes, We cant just let it go like this.
What do you want?
MO Ruyue crossed her arms and stared at Li Zeyan, trying to figure out what he was going to do.
Shen Yunyan was quite capable. In just a few days, she had brainwashed Li Zeyan.
She couldnt help but wonder if it was a mistake to let Li Zeyan follow Shen Yunyan.
Li Zeyan was a 16-year-old teenager. He shouldnt be led astray by others.
You made Sister Yun Yan fall, so you have to apologize to Sister Yun Yan!
The young man shouted fearlessly.
He was not as tall as MO Ruyue, so he had to raise his head slightly.
You want me to apologize?
MO Ruyueughed as if she had heard a funny joke.
Li Zeyan, get this straight. Im the Demon Worlds Saintess.
Whats nxong with the Saintess of the Demon Realm? If you do something wrong, you have to apologize!
Have you ever seen the Holy Maiden of the Demon Realm apologize after killing someone?
He looked at Shen Yunyan. Did this woman want to be punished by the heavens again?
If Shen Yunyan really wanted to be punished by the heavens, she could satisfy her.
You were wrong in the first ce. Why dont you apologize?
Li Zeyan clenched his fists. He couldnt win against the woman in front of him.
If he could beat this woman in front of him, he would have punched her long ago.
Its not that I dont want to apologize, but if I apologize to her without doing anything wrong, she will be punished by the heavens.
Nio Ruyue said earnestly. Li Zeyan was still too young and did not know anything.
How could that be?
Li Zeyan didnt believe it.
What she said just now was nonsense. She just wanted people to misunderstand me.
She raised her chin slightly and said to Shen Yunyan,Do you need me to apologize to you? But if you did that, you might be punished by the heavens. Anyone who lied would be punished by the heavens.
Li Zeyan was skeptical of MO Ruyues words.
Because MO Ruyue looked calm and confident.
Was Sister Yun Yan really lying?
Shen Yunyans expression was a little unnatural. Facing MO Ruyues aggressiveness, she panicked.
She had been struck by lightning several times before, all because she had lied through her teeth.
She didnt believe that something like this would happen every time. Besides, Li Zeyan was still here.
It was not easy to make Li Zeyan hate MO Ruyue, so he could not let his efforts go to waste.
So, Shen Yunyan calmed herself down. You should apologize for what you did wrong. Now youre even trying to defend yourself.
Im sorry.
MO Ruyue said in a low voice. Her tone did not sound like she was apologizing at all. She had only said those few words casually.
He apologized arrogantly without any sincerity.
Li Zeyan looked up at the clear sky. There was no sign of divine retribution.
Therefore, it meant that what Sister Yun Yan said was true.
It seems like
Before Li Zeyan could finish his sentence, he heard a thunderous sound.
A bolt of lightning struck Shen Yunyan.
Shen Yunyan rolled her eyes and fell unconscious on the ground.
This scene shocked Li Zeyan.
Nio Ruyue was very calm throughout the whole process. This was not the first time she had seen Shen Yunyan being punished by the heavens, so she was not shocked at all.
She pointed at Shen Yunyan, who was lying on the ground. The sunlight shone on her face, and she said with a hint of regret,See, this is her retribution.
Li Zeyans eyes wereplicated. The gentle and understanding Sister Yun Yan was actually a woman who was full of nonsense.
Thinking of this, Li Zeyan felt very sad. l thought what she said was true. I trusted her so much.
He said in a somewhat dejected manner.
He had almost be someone who could not differentiate right from wrong.
MO Ruyue patted Li Zeyans shoulder and said, Its not your fault. Its those who have ulterior motives who are at fault. You need to be independent and self-taught. You also need to have the ability to distinguish right from wrong.
You cant just listen to what others say.
Hearing Nio Ruyues words, Li Zeyan seemed to understand.
He looked down at Shen Yunyan, who was lying on the ground, and seemed to have made a decision.
Sister Ruyue, Id bettere back and follow you.
Birds of a feather flock together. He was afraid that he would be like
Shen Yunyan in the future if he stayed with her for too long.
Therefore, it was better to leave Shen Yunyan as soon as possible.
MO Ruyues lips twitched. She did not want to stay with Shen Yunyan anymore?
l dont have time to take care of you.
She was busy, not to mention that she was a spy and a saintess.
Li Zeyans childish face was filled with anger. At my age, some people are already fathers. Why are you still treating me like a child? 1 dont need to be taken care of!
He wasnt a baby, so why would he need special care?
Are you sure you want to follow the great body?
MO Ruyues expression was grave. After going around in circles, Li Zeyan had finally decided to stay by her side.
Actually, it would be good if she didnt follow Shen Yunyan.
With Shen Yunyans personality, who knew what Li Zeyan would be?
Im sure. I dont need you to serve me. Theres nothing I dont know how to
do.
MO Ruyue was tempted when she heard Li Zeyan say that he knew how to doundry, cook, and clean up the house.
Her eyes sparkled like stars in the Milky Way.
There arent many boys like you these days.
His tone was gratified.
In modern times, there were not many sixteen-year-olds who knew how to wash clothes, cook, and do housework.
Those who could do theundry and clean up the house at this age were all their parents considerate little quilted jackets.
This was the first time Li Zeyan had heard someone praise him like this. In his opinion, he should be able to do all these.
Her face was slightly red as she slowly nothing. In my vige, people of my age can do this. Its nothing strange.
As he spoke, Li Zeyans voice weakened.
But they are already dead.
Sadness covered his heart.
MO Ruyue knew that Li Zeyan was feeling terrible, but she could not empathize with him.
Dont worry. One day, Ill help you find the murderer.
Yes.
Li Zeyan stared at MO Ruyue.
Thinking of her training in the afternoon, MO Ruyue lowered her head and looked at Shen Yunyan who was still lying on the ground. This woman always liked to stir up trouble. Did she fall in love with the feeling of being struck by lightning?
MO Ruyue couldnt help but think to herself.
After that, MO Ruyue sent a disciple of the Devil Realm over to escort Shen Yunyan back to her own territory.
In the future, you will live next door. When you have nothing to do, dont run around the demon world. Be careful not to be eaten by the monsters.
There are also monsters in the Demon Realm?
The Demon Realm is so big. Theres nothing. Just dont be too far away from others alone.
Alright, I got it.
Li Zeyan took MO Ruyues words to heart.
Sister Ruyue, what do you want to eat?
MO Ruyue nced at Li Zeyan. Seeing how proactive he was, she said,Go to the vegetable garden and take a look. If theres anything youre good at, make it.
Anyway, the vegetables in the vegetable garden were all her favorite.
There was naturally a cafeteria in the Devil World, but it was a little far from where MO Ruyue lived, so they didnt bother to go back and forth.
Moreover, the chefs in the demon world were also problematic. They made strange dark dishes every day.
There were things like orange stir-fried yam, raspberry stewed chicken, and small lingzhi stir-fried pig intestines..
Chapter 682 - 682: Lightning Strike Again
Chapter 682 - 682: Lightning Strike Again
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Having been to the canteen in the Devil World a few times hadpletely refreshed MO Ruyues worldview.
However, everyone thought it was delicious.
As a modern person who had eaten a lot of delicacies, he was speechless at this kind of dish.
The Demon Realm could be considered a food desert.
Therefore, she still liked to start a new family.
However, she did not like to cook. It would be great if there was takeout.
Unfortunately, there was no takeout here. Is there a vegetable garden here?
Li Zeyans eyes shed with surprise.
The vegetable garden should be MO Ruyues.
In the backyard. Go and take a look for yourself.
Hence, Li Zeyan went to the backyard and looked at everything in the backyard. His eyes were filled with shock.
There were actually so many dishes!
Moreover, he had never seen some of them before.
The only vegetables he had seen were green vegetables and radishes, as well as some pumpkin and winter melon.
Mo Ruyue also followed him to the vegetable garden in the backyard. Seeing Li Zeyans shocked expression, she said, Whats wrong?
Li Zeyan turned his head and said in a daze, You have too many dishes here. There are so many varieties that Ive never seen before.
MO Ruyue shrugged and looked up at the sky.When winteres, there wont be so many dishes. Just do whatever you know how to do. I still have to go practice after dinner.
Alright.
Li Zeyan nodded and walked into the vegetable garden.
In order to leave a good impression on MO Ruyue, he prepared to cook a few of his signature dishes.
He chose a pumpkin, a very small green pumpkin.
He picked a few red chilies and some cabbage hearts.
There were too many things that he did not know and he did not know what to do. He would study them properly when he had time.
MO Ruyue was watering her nts in the courtyard. Soon, she smelled the fragranceing from the kitchen.
She put down the kettle and walked straight to the kitchen.
Looking at Li Zeyans skillful cooking skills, it seemed that this child would be quite good to be a Master Chef in the future.
Not bad.
Sister Ruyue, we can eatter.
Li Zeyan covered the lid of the pot and said to MO Ruyue, who was walking out of the door.
She would be shocked by his cooking skillster.
It was finally time for dinner.
There were only two vegetarian dishes on the table. MO Ruyue only nted vegetables and did not raise any poultry. If she wanted to eat meat, she had to go out and buy it.
If he had some money, he could go to the demonic cafeteria to buy some ingredients. It was also quite convenient.
She had done this before, but the price was slightly more expensive than the ones outside.
Some purchasing disciples wanted to get some price difference from the ingredients.
Fortunately, it wasnt too outrageous. Otherwise, MO Ruyue would definitely report him.
It looks delicious.
MO Ruyue gulped and impatiently picked up her chopsticks.
Li Zeyan scooped a bowl of white rice for MO Ruyue. This pumpkin is sweet and delicious!
This vegetable heart is very tender, crispy, and sweet!
Although there were only two dishes, MO Ruyue felt that they were delicious.
He was full of praise.
Li Zeyan was very happy when he saw that his dishes were recognized by others.
No one had ever praised his cooking before.
This feeling made him want to continue doing it in the future.
He hoped that MO Ruyue would praise him even more.
l usually dont eat rice, but your cooking is too delicious. I want to eat a bowl of rice!
MO Ruyue only felt that the stir-fried pumpkin was very appetizing and not too sweet.
Sister Ruyue, I heard that cultivators dont need to eat. Is that true?
Initially, Li Zeyan had believed that cultivators didnt eat. However, when he saw MO Ruyue eating so happily, he began to doubt what he had heard before.
Didnt they say that cultivators didnt eat?
The Demon Lord probably doesnt need to eat. For someone like me, I cant stand it without eating. Maybe when my cultivation level is high, I wont need to eat anymore.
Other than drinking tea, the demon had never eaten anything.
However, she had only spent a few days with the Demon Venerable, so she did not know him very well.
l see. I thought that I didnt need to eat as long as I cultivated. I even thought that I could cultivate without eating. Back then, I starved myself to cultivate and almost fainted from hunger.
Li Zeyan was speechless for his actions back then.
His familys conditions were not good to begin with. If he could cultivate without eating, he could save a mouthful of food for his family. Youre really silly. Do you want to learn demonic cultivation?
MO Ruyue couldnt help but smile. What a silly boy.
Li Zeyan hesitated and said, Actually, Ive always wanted to learn how to be an immortal cultivator. But Im in the Demon Realm now. It seems like Im not fated to be an immortal cultivator.
Most people would choose immortal cultivation, and only a small number of people would choose devil cultivation.
Out of a hundred people, only one or two would choose to be a Fiendish Cultivator.
Why dont you consider being a Devil Cultivator? MO Ruyue took the rice from her mouth and mumbled, In fact, demonic cultivators are not bad.
Previously, she had been studying immortal cultivation, but now she had changed to demonic cultivation.
There was nothing bad about being a fiendish cultivator.
Li Zeyan was eating. He was still considering whether he should learn the Devil Cultivation.
He was afraid that he would fall into the abyss and be consigned to eternal damnation after learning demonic cultivation.
Outsiders didnt rmend learning demonic cultivation.
Therefore, he did not know who to listen to. l have to think about it.
Alright, take your time to think about it.
MO Ruyue put down her bowl and chopsticks. She was so full that she could not continue practicing her swordsmanship in the afternoon.
It was very ufortable to have a bloated stomach that could not be digested.
Li Zeyan took the initiative to clear the table and wash the dishes.
Seeing this, MO Ruyue nodded with satisfaction. He was a hardworking young man, so she could keep him by her side.
When she had nothing to do, she could even do housework and cook for herself. How good would that be?
Moreover, he didnt have to pay a single sry.
How good was that?
When Shen Yunyan woke up, she found herself lying in her room.
She was so angry that she was struck by lightning again.
Why was MO Ruyue struck by lightning every time she apologized to herself?
Could it be that she had gone too far in lying?
Otherwise, why would he be struck by lightning again and again?
Other than this exnation, she could not think of any other possibility.
He couldnt possibly say that it was MO Ruyues trick, could he?
MO Ruyue did not have the ability to make the heavens punish her.
It seemed that he really couldnt make MO Ruyue apologize to him in front of her in the future.
Brother Zeyan
Shen Yunyan was a little thirsty. She sat up from the bed and called out in a hoarse voice.
However, no one responded to him.
Wheres Li Zeyan?
Shen Yunyan got out of bed in a daze. She felt dizzy.
After being struck by lightning, his brain was still like paste.
She shook her head and leaned against the door frame, trying hard to wake herself up.
l havent seen my body for a long time, I dont know where Ive died.
Shen Yunyan cursed with a displeased expression and went to pour herself some water.
Li Zeyan had seen him being struck by lightning with his own eyes. Now that Li Zeyan was not here, could it be that Li Zeyan had betrayed him?
Shen Yunyan put down the cup in her hand and walked towards MO Ruyues room.
It was not easy to brainwash Li Zeyan. She would never allow MO Ruyue to take away the brainwashed Li Zeyan from her.
He hurried to MO Ruyues courtyard.
At this moment, MO Ruyue had already left her residence, leaving Li Zeyan alone in the courtyard, doing what he liked.
He didnt have any special hobbies at the moment. He just helped MO Ruyue take care of the flowers and nts in the courtyard.
He heard that some flowers and nts had great origins.
He didnt really understand flowers and nts..
Chapter 683 - 683: Horse Stance
Chapter 683 - 683: Horse Stance
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When Shen Yunyan saw that Li Zeyan was indeed here, her expression changed instantly. She said gently, Brother Zeyan, youre here? She did not look in the mirror when she came out.
If she had looked in the mirror, she wouldnt havee out so rashly.
Her face was ck and white, and her hair was messy. She did not have the image of ady at all.
Li Zeyan turned around and looked at Shen Yunyan. He swallowed his saliva in shock.
He almost thought that he had seen a ghost in broad daylight.
Shen Yunyan?
Li Zeyans face tensed up. He felt like he had been brainwashed by Shen Yunyan during the few days he had spent with her.
Many things were different from what Shen Yunyan had said.
What kind of vile woman was MO Ruyue?
In his opinion, although MO Ruyue was not that gentle, at least she was more real and did not seem to be putting on an act.
Brother Zeyan, how can you call my name? Didnt you call me Sister Yunyan?
Hearing Li Zeyan!s unfamiliar address, Shen Yunyan knew that something bad was going to happen.
Shen Yunyan, why are you here?
Li Zeyan!s attitude was cold. He could see this woman clearly.
He had never seen such a woman before.
He could actually lie through his teeth and say it so confidently.
If it wasnt for the heavenly lightning, he would have believed Shen Yunyan. You should go back with me, Didnt we agree to stay by my side?
No, Im not going back. I want to stay with MO Ruyue.Li Zeyan refused immediately.
Shen Yunyan could lie to him once, but he didnt want to be lied to every time.
She would rather stay with someone who was not gentle than return to Shen
Yunyans side.
That gentleness was fake.
Perhaps it was because they were so used to pretending that they didnt have a single w.
She doesnt have time to take care of you. Whats the point of staying here?
She doesnt have time to take care of me. Thats her business. Its fine as long as I can take care of her.
Shen Yunyan couldnt believe that she had been rejected by Li Zeyan.
Did MO Ruyue give you some benefits? she asked.
She rushed to Li Zeyans side and grabbed his hand. I can give you the same benefits that MO Ruyue can give you!
I dont need you.
Li Zeyan shook his head. Since he had already decided whose side he wanted
to stay with, he had no other choice.
If it wasnt for the other partys bad character, he would definitely continue to persevere.
Do you really want to be with MO Ruyue?Shen Yunyan gritted her teeth, not understanding what was so good about MO Ruyue.
Was it because MO Ruyue was his Senior Sister?
Yes.
Li Zeyan said without hesitation.
This was enough to prove his final choice.
In the end, Shen Yunyan could only leave quietly.
Why did MO Ruyue always like to snatch things from her?
MO Ruyue was cultivating when she looked up and saw the Demon Commander staring at her with displeasure.
Thus, MO Ruyue had peeped at the Demon Venerables heart rate.
Why did his heart rate decrease instead of increasing?
Was her performance not good enough?
Master, is there something bothering you?
MO Ruyue asked curiously, her beautiful eyes brimming with brilliance.
Those eyes were impossible to ignore. They were dazzling.
You said that this ck Heart Fruit is the only one?
Ming Sihan said faintly. He raised his hand and pointed at the ck Heart Fruit on the tablezily.
It was time to settle the score.
MO Ruyues heart skipped a beat. Could it be because of the ck Heart Fruit? This is indeed the only ck Heart Fruit I gave to Master.
Oh? The only one, do you have some misunderstanding about the only one?
l dont understand Masters meaning.
MO Ruyue lowered her head guiltily. She was secretlyining in her heart. Why did the Demon Lord care about this thing?
That Ye Yunfeng also has a ck Heart Fruit in his hands, and it was even given by you.
This MO Ruyue was clearly not putting him in her eyes!
With a thud, MO Ruyue knelt on the ground. Master, the ck Heart Fruit in Senior Martial Brother Yes hand was indeed given by me, and Im the only one who gave it to him.
The only one I said was actually the only time. I didnt give anything to Senior Brother Ye or Master before. This ck Heart Fruit can be considered the only time I gave it away.
MO Ruyue forced herself.
Do you think I cant tell the difference between the only one and the only one?
l dare not.
Nio Ruyue lowered her head.
This time, it could be considered a wrong opportunism.
If you lie to me, Ill punish you with a horse stance for the entire afternoon.
Master, I was wrong.
MO Ruyue was able to admit her mistakes, and she would still dare to do it again.
Squat down and dont disturb my rest.
Oh.
MO Ruyue could only face the sun and do the horse stance.
Although he didnt lock her up and torture her, the horse stance was also very tiring. It trained ones legs.
Three minutester, her legs began to ache.
She looked at the silver-haired man lying on the soft couch with resentment and could not help butin in her heart.
The afternoon passed just like that. MO Ruyue was drenched in sweat and she had lost all feeling in her legs.
The demon slowly woke up.
Ming Sihan nced at MO Ruyue, who was still in the horse stance, and felt satisfied.
His endurance was not bad. At least he did not ck off the entire time.
He stood up and approached MO Ruyue, walking around her.
Do you know your mistake?
l know I was wrong. t!
Where did I go wrong?
You should hide under the shade of the tree when you do the horse stance, or youll get tanned.
You
Ming Sihan almost choked on MO Ruyues words.
In fact, MO Ruyue was also angry and deliberately went against the Demon Venerable.
In that case, go and do a horse stance under the shade of a tree for another two hours.
Cant you cure a little girl?
However, MO Ruyue did not move.
Cant you hear my orders?
Ming Sihan said coldly.
Master, my legs are numb, said MO Ruyue with a bitter face.
He couldnt move, He couldnt feel anything at all.
Ming Sihan looked at MO Ruyue calmly as she maintained her posture.
Think of a way yourself.
After saying that, Ming Sihan left without looking back.
MO Ruyue was left standing on the spot, rolling her eyes.
Fortunately, MO Chengfeng appeared in the end.
Seeing MO Chengfengs figure passing by, MO Ruyue hurriedly shouted,Eldest Senior Brother, Eldest Senior Brother,e and help me.
MO Chengfeng stopped in his tracks and looked at MO Ruyue, who was in a horse stance, with a puzzled expression. Did Junior Sister encounter some difficulties?
Whats wrong?
MO Chengfeng walked to MO Ruyues side and asked curiously.
Eldest Senior Brother, my legs are numb and I cant move. Help me up. The cruel Demon Lord had left her here alone.
If Nio Chengfeng didnte over, she would probably fall and eat dog shit.
Listening to MO Ruyues voice, MO Chengfeng couldnt help but chuckle, his smile like the warm sun in March, shining on peoples hearts.
He held MO Ruyues hand. Can you move now?
MO Ruyue shook her head. She felt that her lower body was already stiff orpletely out of her control.
Thus, MO Chengfeng directly carried MO Ruyue.
You dont have to hug me like this.
MO Ruyues face was slightly red. It was not good to be sticky.
MO Chengfeng paused and said,Then why dont I put you down and let you walk back by yourself?
Then Ill have to trouble Senior Brother to send me back.
His legs were numb and stiff. He couldnt even feel a touch.
Others wouldnt be like this when they were doing the horse stance. She didnt know why she felt like she was paralyzed when she was doing the horse stance..
Chapter 684 - 684: Kill Them
Chapter 684 - 684: Kill Them
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Chengfeng was carrying MO Ruyue, and the people around him were dumbfounded.
Whats going on?
l dont know. Could it be that Senior Brother MO is together with the Holy
Niaiden?
Thats impossible.
Then why dont you exin why Senior Brother MO is hugging the Saintess?
This
All of a sudden, rumors started to spread.
MO Ruyue, who was involved, felt that those people were just making groundless usations.
MO Chengfeng sent MO Ruyue to her residence.
Xia Zhixing looked at this scene with a shocked expression.
What was going on?
Why was Senior Brother MO hugging Ruyue? Senior Brother, Ruyue, you guys?
Xia Zhixing felt extremelyplicated.
Li Zeyan also saw MO Ruyue in MO Chengfengs arms. He was stunned for a moment before he went to MO Ruyues side. Sister Ruyue, whats wrong?
Was he injured?
Otherwise, why would this man hold Sister Ruyue in his arms?
Lets talkter. Eldest Senior Brother, just put me on the recliner.
Nio Ruyue pointed at the recliner in the courtyard.
MO Chengfeng ced MO Ruyue on the recliner and said,You guys continue chatting. I still have something to do, so Ill leave first.
Okay, take care, senior brother.
MO Ruyue nodded and waved at MO Chengfeng.
When MO Chengfeng left, he turned his head and looked at Xia Zhixing. He didnt say anything and just left.
Xia Zhixing watched as MO Chengfengs back disappeared around the corner. He came to MO Ruyues side.
Junior Sister, whats wrong?
I was punished by the Demon Lord to enter the horse stance. My legs are numb and I havent recovered yet.
She knew that the horse stance was very tiring, but this was the first time she was this tired.
Xia Zhixing was confused. Why did the demon punish you to do the horse stance?
This punishment was definitely the lightest punishment.
The Demon Lords punishment had never been so light.
Who knows what the Demon Lord is thinking? MO Ruyue replied vaguely.
The demon punished you for no reason?
Xia Zhixing seemed to want to get to the bottom of it.
Its not for no reason. More or less, I made a mistake myself.
He shouldnt have spoken against his conscience just to curry favor. Now that he was punished, the Demon Lords heart rate had dropped.
if you steal a chicken but fail, youll suffer a loss of rice.
Sister Ruyue, isnt the demon very scary?
Li Zeyan!s ck eyes were filled with fear.
The demon lord of the demon world must be very terrifying.
It was said that the Demon Lord had three heads and six arms, and his mouth was bigger than a wild beasts. He specialized in eating newborn children.
This was because childrens flesh was rtively tender. He had heard such rumors when he was still a child.
What do you think?
l think its very scary. Both adults and children are especially afraid of the Demon Venerable.
After some thought, Li Zeyan continued, I think the Demon Lord must have a green face and sharp fangs. His eyes are like copper bells and his ws are sharp. Hell bite a child with every bite.
Hearing Li Zeyan!s words, MO Ruyue burst into tears.
Xia Zhixing also smiled speechlessly.
The Demon Venerable had a green face and fangs. This rumor was too ridiculous.
Isnt that so?
Li Zeyan looked at the smiles on MO Yue and Xia Zhixings faces and muttered to himself.
Could it be that what he said was wrong?
Youll know when you see the Demon Lord.
I dont want to see him. Im afraid.
Li Zeyan shook his head. He still didnt have the courage to meet the legendary demon.
He had been afraid of the Demon Venerable since he was young. The Demon Venerable was a shadow in his heart, although he had never seen it before.
MO Ruyue stopped smiling. The legendary Demon Lord waspletely different from the Demon Lord she had seen.
Previously, she felt that the demon was difficult to get along with and would kill people at any time.
After spending a few days together, he realized that some of the legends were true.
The Demon Lord was indeed a little difficult to get along with, but he did not kill people for no reason.
It was not as bad as the legend said.
His eyes fell on Xia Zhixing and he asked,Senior Brother, why are you looking for me?
Hearing MO Ruyues question, Xia Zhixings face turned awkward. Cant Ie over to see you?
Uh, of course.
MO Ruyue felt that her legs were gradually regaining feeling. At least she could move.
It was just a little ufortable. Her legs felt as if there were thousands of ants biting them, causing her expression to change drastically.
Seeing MO Ruyues ufortable expression, Xia Zhixing hurriedly Whats wrong?
Its okay. Ill be fine after a while.
MO Ruyue shook her head and gritted her teeth.
Anyone who had experienced this feeling would know.
Sister Ruyue, what do you want to eat tonight? Ill make it for you. Seeing that the sky was gradually darkening, it was time to cook.
He wondered what Sister Ruyue wanted to eat.
MO Ruyue waved her hand. Its up to you. Im not picky.
The vegetables in the garden were all her favorite. No matter what Li Zeyan cooked, it was all her favorite.
Alright, Ill go cook now.
Li Zeyan said as he walked into the vegetable garden.
Ruyue, are you really alright?
Xia Zhixing was still worried.
Its really nothing serious. Its just that my feet are numb.
Ill give you a massage?
No, dont!
At this time, he must not rub it. If he moved, it would hurt twice as much.
MO Ruyue quickly stopped Xia Zhixings reckless behavior.
In the next few days, MO Ruyue learned the most basic moves of the Neb Sword Art.
Then, the Demon Venerables master gave her a mission.
He wanted her to avenge MO Chengfeng.
Master, are you going to avenge Eldest Shixiong? Do I have to kill someone?
MO Ruyue said carefully. She had just been promoted to the position, yet she had received such a special mission.
To be honest, MO Ruyue felt that she was not very good at it.
Her strength was even lower than Eldest Senior Brothers. How could she help Eldest Senior Brother take revenge?
It felt a little difficult.
Ming Sihan nced at MO Ruyue, who wanted to retreat. His dark eyes had a hint of mockery. What? Are you afraid of killing people?
No, I dont have much experience.
Of course MO Ruyue was afraid. In her era, murder was illegal.
Although he had seen dead people here, he had never killed anyone with his own hands. He had beaten people up before.
Ming Sihan listened to MO Ruyue!s words, and his evil eyes were filled with interest.
He didnt expect that Saintess MO Ruyue had never killed anyone before.
Then how did you think of such a vicious way to turn people into human pigs?
Wasnt turning a human into a pig more terrifying than killing someone?
MO Ruyue lowered her head, feeling a little guilty.
Moving your hands is different from moving your mouth.
It was always easy to say it, but it was hard to do it.
There was a saying that was easier said than done.
Then if you have to do this kind of work in the future, even if you dont want to do it, you have to witness the whole process with your own eyes.
Ming Sihan felt that his suggestion was very good.
The corner of MO Ruyues mouth twitched. Master, she said, Im afraid ofmitting a sin if I kill too many people.
Those are people who should be killed. What are you afraid of? You are now the Saintess, and you will be hunted down by all the sects if you work for me. If you dont kill them, they will kill you. Are you willing to let them kill you, or are you going to kill them?
In this position, one had to be clear about their identity.
If not, why did he sit in this position back then?
Kill them, of course. MO Ruyue replied without hesitation.
She did not want to be killed.
Very good. 1 dont think youre a kind person. Its just that you havent seen blood yet.
As a Saintess, her hands would not be clean.
She would not let MO Ruyues hands be too clean.
Hands that were too clean could not protect themselves in this world.
MO Ruyue had a bad feeling when she heard the demons words.
The demon suddenly stood up and said without turning his head: Come with me to the city.
Yes.
MO Ruyue responded and hurriedly followed him. She had no choice but to refuse.
He had no right to refuse..
Chapter 685 - 685: Good Treasure
Chapter 685 - 685: Good Treasure
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The demon brought her to the dungeon, where all kinds of people were imprisoned.
Those people were basically in a terrible state. They were either covered in wounds or half-dead.
The entire dungeon was filled with a pungent smell.
MO Ruyues brows furrowed tightly as she followed behind the Demon.
Do you know who they are?
The demon asked in a low voice, his expression dark.
Captives?
Almost. Some are captives, some are spies from other sects. MO Ruyue was shocked and felt a chill run down her spine.
Ah Kill me!
A miserable voice rang out. Those who could not stand the torture of punishment only wanted to die a quick death.
He could not live or die.
MO Ruyue looked at the prisoners, her eyes filled with despair.
Then are there any spies who are willing to join the Demon Realm? She asked.
Do I have to ept them just because they are willing to join me? I hate betrayers the most. Since they betrayed me once, there will be a second betrayal. I will never ept it!
The Demon Venerables words made MO Ruyue uneasy.
If his identity was exposed one day, he would be finished.
Thinking of this, MO Ruyue raised her head and stared at the Demon Venerables back.
She still had two ways now. Either escape or stand in a higher position so that she would not be killed.
He could escape, but he couldnt.
At this moment, Ming Sihan turned around. Take the ghost consciousness and kill that guy.
MO Ruyue hurriedly retracted her gaze and looked at the man who was huddled in the corner of the cell.
Me? Kill him?
Kill him. Otherwise, Ill kill you and choose another Saintess.
MO Ruyue was shocked. She believed that the Demon Venerable would do what he said.
He held the ghost thought tightly in his hand and took a deep breath.
Ming Sihan asked someone to open the cell and said to MO Ruyue,Go ahead. MO Ruyue had no choice but to go over.
Looking at the mans dazed appearance, she raised her knife and did not dy for too long.
Only she knew that her hands were trembling.
Ming Sihan stared at MO Ruyues back and his eyes darkened. Very good.
MO Ruyue turned around and took out a handkerchief from her bosom. She used the handkerchief to wipe the blood off the sword. Her expression seemed calm, but she was flustered.
What feeling?
It feels like peeling carrots.
MO Ruyue said calmly.
Ming Sihan smiled and said slowly,Peeling radishes?
Master, your sword is really fast. Do you like it?
l quite like it. Thank you, Master.
MO Ruyue replied. Her Demon Venerable Master treated her quite well, but she was a little inhumane sometimes.
Now, go andplete your mission.
Ming Sihan ced his hands behind his back, turned around, and walked towards the exit of the dungeon.
MO Ruyue looked at the man she had just killed and said to the demon disciple beside her, Bury him.
Yes, Holy Maiden.
The demon world disciple responded.
Then, MO Ruyue also left the dungeon.
She hoped that she would not return to this ce.
When MO Chengfeng learned that MO Ruyue was going back with him to take revenge, he felt a littleplicated.
Eldest Senior Brother, I can definitely help you. This is the mission the Demon Lord gave me. MO Ruyue said firmly.
She saw doubt and distrust in Mo Chengfengs eyes.
Actually, this was normal. His strength was lower than MO Chengfengs.
Since this is the Demon Lords arrangement, then follow me.
MO Chengfeng didnt know what the Honor Demon meant, but since this was the Honor Demons arrangement, he could only obey.
MO Ruyue rode her horse and followed behind MO Chengfeng.
He did not expect MO Chengfeng to be someone who did not like to talk.
He didnt notice it when he was in the Demon Realm.
When they arrived at an inn, MO Chengfeng dismounted from his horse. The mark of Red Spiderlily on his forehead had been covered by something, and he was holding the silver bone fracture fan in his hand.
He was dressed in a crescent-white dress and looked elegant.
Lets stay at this inn tonight and continue on our journey tomorrow.
MO Chengfeng said indifferently.
MO Ruyue could only agree.
As soon as they entered the inn, the waiter came up to wee them warmly.
After booking two rooms, MO Chengfeng went into the room with a bad expression.
Mo Ruyue didnt know what was wrong with MO Chengfeng, so she didnt ask further.
After she ate, she asked the waiter to prepare another bowl of noodles and brought it to MO Chengfengs room.
Standing outside MO Chengfengs room, MO Ruyue hesitated.
Senior Brother
There seemed to be no response from the room.
MO Ruyue knocked on the door and continued asking, Senior Brother, are you inside?
Come in.
MO Ruyue opened the door upon hearing the sound and saw MO Chengfeng inside.
Mo Chengfengs held the sword in his hand. His eyes were cold as he wiped the sword in his hand over and over again.
Senior Brother, after such a long journey, should you at least eat?
Mo Ruyue ced the noodles on the table and said carefully,Their noodles are really good. Senior Brother, look, theres a poached egg inside. How could the food in the Demon Realmpare to the food outside?
Mo Chengfeng did not eat immediately.
Why did the Demon Lord send you back with me?
He asked in a low voice. He could not understand.
He knew MO Ruyues strength.
Not to mention helping him, it would be good enough if he did not drag him down.
Perhaps the Demon Lord wants me to gain experience.
Mo Ruyue coughed lightly. She felt that her ability was being questioned.
She had already learned the simple Neb Sword Technique. The Demon Lord had said that if she learned the Neb Sword Technique, she could fight against Golden Core cultivators with her current strength.
This meant that the Neb Sword Technique was a good treasure.
But thats too risky. If I cant protect you, youll die.
Mo Chengfengs pursed his thin lips.
His face was filled with worry and worry.
Even if he brought his other junior brothers along, he would not have such worries.
Senior brother, 1 can definitely do it.
MO Ruyue said firmly.
Even if her Neb Sword Technique wasnt enough, didnt she still have the brick?
The Heavenly Retribution Experience Card had not expired yet.
She definitely had the ability to protect herself.
Seeing the determination and courage in those clear eyes, MO Chengfeng could only choose to believe it.
This junior sister was able to be the saintess among so many people. She must have something extraordinary.
If Junior Sister Ruyue did not have any ability, how could she sit on the position of Saintess?
Senior Brother, why are we going to take revenge?
MO Ruyue asked curiously.
He only knew that MO Chengfeng was going to take revenge, but he did not know who MO Chengfeng was.
MO Chengfengs face darkened. He didnt say anything, as if he didnt want to mention it.
MO Ruyue couldnt force him to tell her.
Hence, she stood up and said, Senior Brother, you should quickly finish your noodles. It wont taste good when it gets cold. Ill go back and rest first. Well continue our journey tomorrow.
After giving her instructions, MO Ruyue stood up and left MO Chengfengs room.
He wondered what secrets MO Chengfeng was hiding.
In any case, he just had to follow MO Chengfeng. Everything would be revealed when the time came.
MO Chengfeng looked at MO Ruyues back until she disappeared. He then slowly retracted his gaze.
The noodles in the bowl looked very tempting, and there was also a poached egg.
He picked up his chopsticks and started eating..
Chapter 686 - 686: Self-Stealing
Chapter 686 - 686: Self-Stealing
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue woke up early after a night without dreams.
Because she had something to do, she always woke up on time the next day. If there was nothing else, she might sleep untilte in the morning.
After washing up and looking at her beautiful face in the mirror, MO Ruyues lips curled into a smile.
The day of traveling began again.
She bumped into MO Chengfeng downstairs.
Mo Chengfeng seemed to have finished eating and was waiting for her toe down.
Senior Brother, why didnt you call me earlier?
Mo Ruyue asked awkwardly. She thought she had woken up early enough, but MO Chengfeng woke up earlier than her.
MO Chengfeng nodded slightly and watched MO Ruyue walking over.
Mo Ruyue was wearing a ck outfit with a curvy body. Her ck hair wasbed into a ponytail, and she looked valiant.
Her skin was as fair as snow, and her facial features were exquisite. Just a nce at her was pleasing to the eye.
Who would associate such a beautiful woman with the saintess of the demon world?
Dont rush. Take your time.
MO Chengfeng smiled.
Did you do well yesterday?
Seeing MO Ruyue sit down, MO Chengfeng asked with great concern.
He barely slept. Thinking about going back for revenge this time, he couldnt sleep at all.
Its fine. I just feel that the bed is too soft. Im used to sleeping on a hard bed. MO Ruyue said helplessly.
Those who were used to sleeping on soft beds were not used to sleeping on hard beds, and those who were used to sleeping on hard beds were not used to sleeping on soft beds.
Otherwise, she would feel her back ache.
MO Ruyue was especially envious of people who could sleep in both hard and soft beds.
Can we still travel today?
Of course, this wont affect my journey.
MO Ruyue nodded.
After breakfast, the two of them continued on their way.
They entered the borders of Xi Liang. The clothes of Xi Liang had a kind of exotic beauty.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but sigh when she saw all kinds of people passing by.
Senior brother, are you from Xi Liang?
Yes.
MO Chengfeng responded in a low voice.
He looked up at the sky. The sun was setting, but the vendors by the roadside had no intention of leaving. Lets stay here tonight.
Sure.
MO Ruyue had the same thought, but she didnt dare to bring it up.
She hade with MO Chengfeng to seek revenge, so how could she have the cheek to take the initiative to ask for a break?
The two of them stayed in a big inn. The environment of this big inn was much better than the inns they had stayed in on the way.
Not only was the room big, but the interior was also exquisitely decorated.
As soon as MO Ruyue entered the room, she started to look around and touch the room.
In modern times, this should be considered a three or four star hotel.
Atter a long journey, she finally took a shower in this inn.
After showering, she took out a new set of clothes from the bag.
The backpack that the salted fish system gave her could only store the things that the system gave her. As for other external things, she could not put them in the backpack.
He could only wash the clothes that he had worn before, then hang them to dry. He would pack them up and take them away when he left.
If only I had a storage ring.
MO Ruyue sighed.
She was extremely eager to get a storage ring.
But he didnt have that much money.
MO Ruyue went out to look for MO Chengfeng. She saw that MO Chengfeng had also changed his clothes and still looked elegant.
A handsome young master.
Shall we go out for a walk?
Alright.
MO Ruyue also wanted to go out and take a look.
There seemed to be a night market in Xi Liang. Most countries and cities would have a curfew at night.
Of course, there was not a curfew every day.
Is there no curfew in Xi Liang?
Yes, Xi Liang is the most open-minded country.
It meant that the ruler of Xiliang must have a way of governing the country.
MO Ruyue said thoughtfully.
How nice would it be to have a barbecue at night?
There were delicacies everywhere, and they could not finish them no matter how much they ate.
MO Ruyues words made MO Chengfengs face darken.
She turned her head to look at MO Chengfengs side profile. The mans side profile was perfect.
However, his eyes were filled with coldness and endless hatred.
The little joy on her face disappeared because of her praise for the person in power.
Could it be that MO Chengfeng had some sort of deep hatred with the person in power?
It must be because of hatred.
She didnt dare to speak carelessly, afraid of making MO Chengfeng unhappy.
The streets outside were bustling with activity. People came and went, adults and children, men and women, all kinds of people.
Some children ran around, while others rode on their fathers necks.
Laughter filled his ears.
How lively.
MO Ruyue said.
Miss, do you want to buy a heart knot? The meaning is to form a united heart.
A vendor was holding a Heart-knot and promoting it to MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue nced at the Heart-knot and waved her hand.!No need, no need.
Im a single dog.
With that, he walked away.
Miss, do you want to buy the lovesick bracelet? Another enthusiastic peddler blocked MO Ruyues way.
She asked MO Ruyue with a smile.
No need, no need. I dont have anyone 1 miss.
She quickly walked to the other side of MO Chengfeng so that no one would stop her from buying anything.
He wasnt rich, so he didnt need to buy anything that wasnt necessary.
Bing a Saintess meant a lot of money, but it was impossible to buy a storage ring in a short period of time.
Therefore, working as an honest worker with a fixed sry would never be able to buy the things he wanted to buy.
Demon Venerable Wens monthly sry probably wouldnt increase by much.
MO Ruyue was nning something in her mind.
MO Chengfeng watched as MO Ruyue ran from the left to the right, and a faint smile shed across his eyes.
At this moment, a little Gu Liang stood in front of MO Chengfeng. She raised her head slightly and said slowly, Brother, why dont you buy some flowers for Sister?
Her little red face and big eyes were filled with hope.
MO Chengfeng took out his money and buy all your flowers.
Thank you, big brother. I wish big brother and big sister a happy marriage for a hundred years. the little girl said sweetly.
Mo Ruyue was embarrassed.
After Gu Xiaoliang left, MO Chengfeng passed the flowers to MO Ruyue and said,Take this.
Actually, you dont have to spend money to buy so many.
Its not easy for Little Aunt Liang. Let Little Aunt Liang go home early. Seeing that MO Chengfeng was also kind, MO Ruyue hugged the flowers in her arms.
It had to be said that the flowers were quite fragrant.
The two of them continued to walk forward. The moon was shining brightly in the sky, and the crowd was surging.
MO Ruyue had seen the differences between Xi Liang and other countries, but there were also simrities.
Of course, there were all kinds of gossip.
He could even hear gossip about himself. This Demon Realm Saintess is not ordinary.
Really?
Nonsense, the entire Jade Pure Immortal School is no match for the Saintess.
Really? That Saintess is too powerful.
Hearing these words, MO Ruyue revealed a helpless expression.
These things had already happened a long time ago. Why were these people still talking about these things?
The news spread too slowly.
Its said that the Holy Maiden of the Demon World also went to snatch the seven-colored fire seed. Did she get it?
Ive never heard of this.
I know, I know. One of them said excitedly.
The gossipy men gathered together and chatted idly, not noticing that a man and a woman nearby were listening to their gossip.
Oh, you know? Speaking of which, this news seemed to have been left unsettled.
Let me tell you, the Demon Realm Saintess didnt get the seven-colored fire seed.
Really?
Nonsense, I already said I know. Did I lie to you?
Where is the Seven-Colored Fire Seed now?
l dont know about that. Its said that the people from Xuanling Immortal Sect originally wanted to bring the seven-colored fire seed back, but they were robbed halfway.
You dare to snatch the things of the Xuanling Immortal Sect? Im afraid youre tired of living. This is probably done by the Demon Worlds Holy Maiden, right(
No, its said that the Prime Ministers residences Miss Wei stole from the inside..
Chapter 687 - 687: Facing It Alone
Chapter 687 - 687: Facing It Alone
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Mo Ruyue listened to their discussions and felt that it was very magical.
He was already very close to the truth, but in the end
The seven-colored fire seed was now on her body.
Therefore, she desperately wanted a storage ring. If she had a storage ring, she would be able to store her treasures in it.
It was still a little unsafe to carry the treasure with him.
These people really have nothing better to do.
MO Chengfeng couldnt help but say.
Senior Brother, lets go back.
MO Ruyue withdrew her gaze from the gossiping crowd and prepared to leave.
Alright.
MO Chengfeng responded and followed behind MO Ruyue.
The two of them walked one after the other.
Suddenly, the two of them felt something and walked into the alley in tacit understanding.
Senior Brother, are we being followed?
Yes, there are quite a number of them.
The two of themmunicated in low voices and prepared for a response.
Soon after, a dozen men in ck surrounded MO Chengfeng and MO Ruyue.
Mo Chengfengs and Mo Ruyue immediately stood with their backs to each other, vigntly looking at these men in ck.
MO Chengfeng, you still dare to appear. Today is the day you die!
After the man in ck finished speaking, he drew the sword in his hand.
Go, kill MO Chengfeng for me.
When his sword shed towards MO Chengfeng, MO Ruyues body couldnt
help but receive the de with her bare hands.
One after another.
She couldnt help but let out a fragrant breath.
In such a critical moment, he could actually trigger a bare-handed attack.
Junior Sister, be careful.
Senior Brother, dont worry about me. Im fine!
MO Ruyue responded and looked at the man in ck in front of her gloomily.
When the man in ck saw that the sword in his hand was caught by a woman, his face darkened.
Did this woman want to die?
MO Chengfeng started to tangle with the others.
Their target was MO Chengfeng. As for that woman, they could just kill her while they were at it.
She was just a woman. How capable could she be?
If you want to die, Ill fulfill your wish!
The man in ck narrowed his eyes, and a sharp glint shed across them.
Big brother, I dont want to die, let me go.
MO Ruyue begged for mercy.
Let go.
I want to, but you want to kill me, so I cant let go!
MO Ruyue also wanted to take her hand away, but she couldnt control it.
He did not know when this skill would lose its effect.
Are you kidding me?
The man in ck felt that his intelligence had been insulted and immediately flew into a rage.
He held the hilt of his sword with one hand and attacked MO Ruyue with the other.
Mo Ruyue dodged left and right, moving swiftly and agilely.
After a while, the man was panting heavily from MO Ruyues actions.
Kill her too!
The man in ck shouted.
Only the two of them could deal with this woman. He did not believe that this woman could still hide.
MO Ruyues face darkened as she shouted,Im sorry! You guys are finished.
Rumbling sounds rang out as dozens of lightning bolts struck down.
A dozen men in ck instantly fell to the ground. Some of them were twitching and smoking.
Mo Ruyue let go of the sword in her hand and nced at the ground. I told you that youre done for.
She was the biggest BUG in this world.
Looking at the unconscious person on the ground, Mo Chengfengs eyes shed with disbelief.
His dark eyes were fixed on MO Ruyue. Everything was rted to MO Ruyue.
Where did this womane from?
Doubt upied MO Chengfengs heart.
Junior Sister, you?
MO Chengfeng pursed his thin lips, not knowing how to ask.
I dont know what happened either.
MO Ruyue would never admit that it was her fault.
It was hard to exin.
Did the people of this era know what a system was?
It was better to avoid trouble.
The flower in his hand had already fallen to the ground and was trampled.
MO Chengfeng didnt continue to question her. It didnt matter if it had anything to do with her junior sister, as long as she was a normal person.
Senior Brother, are you alright?
Im fine. How about you?
Im fine too. These people seem to being for you.
Mo Ruyue squatted down and pulled down the mans face cloth, revealing his ordinary face with a goatee.
She searched her body but found nothing. However, she did find a mark by the mans ear.
It seemed to be the mark of an organization.
l know who sent them. We cant stay here for long.
Mo Chengfengs put away his sword and calmly said to MO Ruyue.
If the reinforcements caught up, it would be even more troublesome.
Before MO Ruyue could react, MO Chengfeng dragged her away by her wrist.
MO Ruyue actually wanted to say that there was no need to run so fast. Even if there were reinforcements, there was no need to be afraid.
At worst, she could just apologize to him.
Many people saw the strange phenomenon in the sky. They walked into the alley.
However, he discovered that there was arge group of people lying in the alley.
Ah, are these people all dead?
The onlookers looked at the person lying on the ground in shock.
No way, are all these people dead?
The other quickly squatted down and touched the others pulse with his hand. He found that the pulse was weak.
Theyre not dead yet. They should be able to be treated, Their pulses are still beating.
From the way these people are dressed, they shouldnt be good people.
Moreover, they did something bad and were struck by lightning!
Will we be struck by lightning if we save the bad guys?
What you said is not without reason. The heavens struck them. If we save them, we will be going against the heavens. We cant go against the heavens.
Yes, they are. These people cant be saved, so let them fend for themselves here. If they can survive, its Gods mercy. If they cant survive, its their fate!
After some discussion, no one chose to save these men in ck.
Because they didnt want to go against the heavens.
Going against the heavens would not have a good oue.
MO Chengfeng brought MO Ruyue back to the inn.
Along the way, MO Chengfeng held onto MO Ruyues wrist. He only released MO Ruyues hand when they were inside the room.
Senior brother, we dont have to run so fast. MO Ruyue took two deep breaths.
She jogged all the way, her face slightly ruddy.
Those people finally found me.
MO Chengfengs expression did not look too good. His pale thin lips were pursed into a line.
There was a trace of hatred in his dark eyes.
MO Ruyue rubbed her wrist. She did not ask anything, but just listened to him.
Junior Sister, we might encounter more dangers in the future. Are you afraid?
MO Chengfengs gaze fell on MO Ruyue. He was prepared to face it alone.
Im scared.
Then you will stay here from now on. Senior Brother will avenge himself. If I donte back alive, please pass a message to the Demon Lord
MO Chengfeng didnt me MO Ruyue. This was his grudge, so he didnt need to drag the innocent MO Ruyue into it.
However, he was interrupted by MO Ruyue before he could finish his sentence.
Although I am afraid, I will never retreat. Senior Brothers enemy is my enemy!
So, Senior Brother, you dont have to say anything. I wont leave you alone.
MO Ruyues eyes were filled with determination. She would never back down.
Hearing these words, MO Chengfengs expression was calm, but his heart was in turmoil.
Senior Brother, you and I have to return to the Demon Realm alive.
MO Ruyue said with certainty.
She would never abandon her senior brother..
Chapter 688 - 688: Those who Block Me Will Die!
Chapter 688 - 688: Those who Block Me Will Die!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Junior Sister!
MO Chengfeng looked at the determination in MO Ruyues eyes and felt extremelyplicated.
Senior Brother, I know what you want to say. We must go back alive.
Alright, lets go back alive!
MO Chengfengs eyes turned cold. He had never nned to return alive.
But now, he changed his mind.
Then, MO Chengfeng told MO Ruyue about his enemies.
After hearing MO Chengfengs words, MO Ruyue was filled with shock.
It turned out that MO Chengfeng was actually the legitimate son of the royal family. ording to the tradition of seniority, he should be the crown prince.
However, he did not expect that MO Chengfengs mother would be harmed by a traitor, and his entire family would be executed. He would also fall from the position of Crown Prince and be the least favored prince in the Imperial
Pce.
After fifteen years of ups and downs, MO Chengfeng had suffered all kinds of unfair treatment in the Imperial Pce. Anyone could bully this unfavored prince.
Beneath the red spider lily on his forehead was a scar.
It was the scar of humiliation left behind by the other princes.
Fifteen yearster, by a coincidence, he met the Demon Lord and was brought back to the Demon World by the Demon Lord.
From then on, he had always stayed by the Demon Venerables side to do things.
He wanted to take revenge and return all the humiliation and injustice.
MO Ruyue let out a long sigh.
Although the pce looked magnificent and prosperous, there was a lot of blood and bones behind it.
How many people fought for those worldly possessions?
She had never liked to watch any pce dramas since she was young. She felt that pce dramas were very depressing.
No matter how many beautiful dreams in front of me, Im not going to live or die, Im going to be sad or happy.
MO Chengfengs childhood was unfortunate, and people sympathized with him.
So, I want to kill those people with my own hands.
His cold eyes were filled with killing intent.
MO Ruyue didnt stop or say that she would let bygones be bygones.
How could such a thing just be over?
Senior Brother, Ill go with you. Well advance and retreat together!
MO Ruyue looked determined.
This time, she would definitely help him.
He could not let others bully his senior brother.
The Harem of Xiliang
The graceful and elegant empress listened to her subordinates report, and the flower in her hand was instantly crushed by her.
There were traces of time on his face.
You actually dare toe back! This time, Ill give you a one-way ticket! The womans lips curled into a cruel smile.
He thought that guy wouldnt dare to show up, but he didnt expect him toe back on his own.
The woman took out a token from a small wooden box and handed it to the
man in ck.
Kill him at all costs. If you cant kill him, donte back to see BenGong!
Yes.
You may leave.
Then, the man in ck disappeared into the night. No one knew that someone had been to the Empress Pce.
MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng didnt know how many difficulties awaited them.
However, no matter what difficulties they faced, they could not stop them.
Along the way, the two of them did not retreat at all.
MO Chengfeng, you should have died outside. Why did youe back?
The man was dressed in luxurious clothes, and his face was filled with displeasure.
He held two pearls in his hands.
MO Chengfeng looked at the man from afar, his hands clenched into fists.
l came back for revenge. Its time to pay back what you owe me!
The man sneered coldly, his eyes full of contempt.
He had ten experts by his side, all of whom were Foundation Building cultivators.
It was impossible for MO Chengfeng to defeat these Foundation Building cultivators.
And me.
MO Ruyue slightly raised her chin.
The mans gaze fell on MO Ruyue, and his pupils shrank. Who are you?
l am Senior Brother Mo t s Junior Sister! Ill take your dog life today. MO Ruyue said arrogantly.
The man burst intoughter when he heard MO Ruyues words.
It was as if he had heard a funny joke.
You overestimate yourself!
The man snorted and then ordered, Attack! Kill them!
Dozens of Foundation Building cultivators swarmed forward and attacked MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng.
The man watched the show from the side.
He was the current Crown Prince MO He, and his mother was the current Empress of Xiliang.
When MO He heard that MO Chengfeng had appeared, he could not wait any longer and wanted to kill MO Chengfeng.
Every day that MO Chengfeng was around, he would threaten his position as Crown Prince.
If the Emperor knew about what happened back then, he and the Empress would definitely not have a good ending.
He had already missed a good opportunity to kill MO Chengfeng. This time, he would definitely not miss it!
MO Ruyue performed a set of Neb Sword Technique and found that her opponent was no match for her.
The Neb Sword Technique taught by the Demon Venerable Master was indeed quite impressive.
However, there were too many people on the other side. From time to time, she would involuntarily catch a de with her bare hands. She felt very ufortable.
This greatly affected her performance.
In order to avoid such a thought, MO Ruyue could only apologize and let these people suffer the baptism of the heavens.
With a rumble, dozens of lightning bolts struck down, and ten Foundation Establishment Cultivatorsy on the ground in rows.
MO Ruyue pped her hands and said to MO Chengfeng,Senior Brother, its settled!
MO Chengfeng nodded his head and walked towards MO He step by step with a sharp sword in his hand.
How could this be!
What kind of monster are you?
MO He looked at the Foundation Building cultivator on the ground and panicked. He stood up and retreated.
The ordinary soldiers kept MO He behind them.
However, they did not dare to rush up.
The man in front of her was not simple at all.
Ten Foundation Building cultivators were not a match for this man, and it was even more impossible for ordinary guards like them to be a match for this man.
Stop him and kill him. BenGong will reward you handsomely!
MO Hes voice was trembling. She was obviously frightened.
Although the guards also wanted to get the reward, they knew that they only had one life, so they did not dare to go up.
Seeing this, MO He directly kicked the two guards in front of him away.
The two guards raised their sabers, but they did not dare to attack Mo Chengfeng.
MO Chengfengs gaze was sharp as he coldly said, Anyone who blocks me will die!
If you dont want to die, hurry up and leave. Otherwise, Ill kill all of you!
MO Ruyue opened her mouth without any hesitation or kindness on her face.
However, the guards did not dare to run. With the Crown Prince gone, they could forget about surviving.
MO Chengfeng dealt with the guards blocking his way in a few moves. He flew up andnded in front of MO He.
He grabbed MO Hes neck and said slowly,Mo He, your good days are over.
Dont, dont kill me, dont kill me!
MO Chengfeng, I know you want revenge, but I didnt kill your mother. You shouldnt have killed me!
MO He hurriedly begged for mercy, hoping that MO Chengfeng would not kill him.
Others could die, but he could not.
What you said seems to make sense. However, you bullied me back then. How could I let you off?
A cold smile shed across MO Chengfengs eyes.
Looking at the fear in MO Hes eyes, he was very satisfied. Back then, MO He was so arrogant.
Now, it was finally in his hands.
Big brother, I was really wrong. Can you forgive me on ount of my insensibleness back then?
MO He immediately knelt down in front of MO Chengfeng without any backbone.
He put his palms together and begged for MO Chengfengs forgiveness..
Chapter 689 - 689: Leave the Demon World?
Chapter 689 - 689: Leave the Demon World?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Chengfeng had a smile on his face. His smile was clearly very good-looking, but his smile made people feel a chill down their spines.
In the next second, one of MO Hes arms separated from his body, and hot blood scattered in the air.
Mo Ruyue subconsciously touched her arm when she saw this.
MO Chengfeng smiled. It was hard to tell if he was dead or alive.
nAh
MO He cried out in pain. His face was pale as he curled up on the ground.
His arm was gone!
If he was physically disabled, he would not be able to be the king of
Xiliang.
Then, MO Hes other arm left his body.
l wont take your life. My crippled second brother, watch how your mother dies in my hands.
MO Chengfengs voice was gentle, as if he wasnt the one who cut off MO Hes hands.
MO Chengfeng picked up the severed arm on the ground and turned to leave.
There was still a good show to watch.
MO Ruyue stared deeply at MO Chengfengs back.
The MO Chengfeng today was someone she had never seen before. She could no longer tell which one was the real MO Chengfeng.
He was usually gentle and steady like a big brother, but now he was so ruthless, as if he did not have any human emotions.
The arm in his hand was still bleeding, leaving a trail of blood on the ground.
This man was more or less a little sickly.
Junior Sister, dont get lost.
Mo Chengfengs voice rang out, and his footsteps paused for a moment.
He must have scared Junior Sister Ruyue just now.
Oh, I know.
MO Ruyue responded and quickly followed MO Chengfeng.
Her eyes never left MO Chengfengs arm.
The Xiliang Imperial Pce was destined to wee a bloody storm.
That night, the moon was hidden in the clouds, and the ck clouds were rolling with lightning.
The rumbling sound tore through the entire sky and instantly lit up the entire dark ground.
Two figures appeared in the courtyard of the Empresss pce.
As the lightning shed, two figures were reflected on the ground.
Hua Suxin woke up from her dream, her whole body covered in sweat.
She seemed to feel danger approaching.
She had a nightmare that MO Chengfeng had returned.
Thinking of this, Hua Xin couldnt sleep at all.
She sat up and quickly asked someone toe in and light themp.
However, no one came in even after she shouted a few times. A loud rumbling sound rang out, and the thunder made Hua Suxin tremble in fear.
Why was there no one outside?
Men!
Hua Suxin called out loudly, but no one responded to her.
She got out of bed and could only light the candles in the room herself.
Just as he lit the candle, a gust of wind blew it out.
The entire room fell into darkness.
With a creak, the door was suddenly blown open by a strong wind.
Hua Suxin wanted to close the door. Just as she was about to take a step forward, she saw a sh of lightning and two figures appeared at the door.
This scene scared her so much that she sat on the ground, her eyes filled with fear.
Men, men!
Hua Suxin shouted.
The guards outside finally heard the noise and came over. The guards came to the Empresss bedroom.
Protect the Empress.
Hua Suxin finally recovered from her fear.
Did you see anyone?
Is there an assassin in the pce? The guard asked in confusion.
They didnt find anything when they came over.
Hua Suxin forced herself to calm down. She walked into the courtyard and found nothing.
He had clearly seen two figures just now.
Theres an assassin! There must be an assassin!
Hua Suxin said nervously.
Although the guards didnt see it, they still quickly ordered the assassins to be captured.
At this moment, something fell from the sky.
The guard went forward to check and frowned.
What is it?
Hua Suxin asked with a serious expression. Reporting to the Empress, its an arm!
Arm!
Hua Suxin walked over. When she saw the ring on her finger, she was so frightened that her face turned pale. Her legs went weak and she sat on the ground.
Crown Prince!
The Crown Prince has been harmed!
Hua Suxin couldnt take this blow and her hands tightly gripped the hem of her dress.
He looked at the arm in front of him in disbelief.
Without her arms, how could her son be the emperor?
It must be MO Chengfeng!
Damn MO Chengfeng!
Wheres the Emperor?
Hua Suxin asked, her eyes filled with hatred.
Reporting to the Empress, the Emperor is in Beauty Wangs pce.
Beauty Wang again!
Hua Suxin clenched her fists.
After all, she was old and could notpare to those beauties who had just entered the pce!
The Crown Princes life and death were unknown, and that man was still in another womans bedroom.
How ironic!
No matter what, MO Chengfeng had to die. After MO Chengfeng died, she would deal with Beauty Wang.
Senior Brother, it was so exciting just now. The Empress must have been frightened.
MO Ruyue was all smiles, feeling satisfied.
Hearing the Empresss scream, he felt particrly refreshed.
She asked for it.
MO Chengfengs dark eyes did not have the slightest bit of mercy.
He would never show mercy to the murderer of his mother.
He would take revenge for what happened back then.
Senior Brother, what should we do next?
MO Ruyue stared at the man in front of her curiously.
This man did not show mercy to his enemies at all, but he treated her quite well.
Next, I will personally hand the evidence to the emperor and prove my mothers innocence,
MO Chengfeng clenched his fists tightly, his handsome face filled with determination.
If you need my help, just let me know.
MO Ruyue patted her chest.
On the way from the Demon Realm to Xi Liang, they encountered many people who wanted to assassinate them. These people were basically hired by the
Empress.
However, none of them were hurt.
The main reason was that the two of them were too strong.
Those hired assassins were not their match at all.
As he listened to the girl beside him, MO Chengfengs eyes darkened.
It was all thanks to MO Ruyue that he had been able to reach the Imperial City of Xi Liang so smoothly.
Everything in the Imperial City was familiar to him, but also so unfamiliar.
Those unbearable memories left a deep impression on him.
Junior Sister, thank you!
MO Chengfengs eyes were extremely sincere. He was very grateful to the woman in front of him.
However, after he had taken his revenge, he would return to the Demon Realm.
From now on, he would treat MO Ruyue as his benefactor.
You dont have to thank me because Im family. Ive said it before, senior brothers revenge is my revenge.
MO Ruyue felt a little embarrassed to be thanked so formally by Eldest Senior Brother.
With a hint of redness on her face, she slowly only right for me to help Senior Brother.
MO Chengfeng looked deeply at the woman in front of him. He felt as if his heart had been touched by something.
She was not suitable to be a saintess at all.
Ruyue, Senior Brother will take you out of the Demon Realm in three years.
MO Chengfeng spoke slowly. Actually, after he had taken his revenge, he could leave the Demon Realm.
However, he now seemed to have a reason to continue staying in the Demon Realm.
Leave the Demon Realm?
MO Ruyues expression turned grave.
Because she had never thought of leaving the Demon Realm.
Even if he wanted to leave, he should at least step on a higher position..
Chapter 690 - 690: Either she dies or I die!
Chapter 690 - 690: Either she dies or I die!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Thats right. Three yearster, there will be a new Saintess. At that time, the
Demon Lord will no longer need you, and you will no longer be a Saintess.
At that time, we shall leave the Demon Realm together.
Originally, entering the Demon Realm was only an ident.
MO Ruyue hesitated for a moment, then nodded and said, Alright, well leave the Demon Realm together when the timees.
Originally, she didnt want to leave the demon world, but after thinking about her identity as a spy, she felt that it was better to leave the demon world.
Her identity would not be exposed.
If her identity was exposed, then she would have no chance to leave the Demon Realm.
The Demon Lord had said that he would never tolerate traitors staying in the Demon Realm.
If they knew her identity as a spy, they might skin her alive.
MO Ruyue felt her legs go weak at the thought of turning her into a human pig.
She didnt want to do this at all.
As long as she did not expose her identity, she might be able to escape unscathed.
When she left the Demon Realm, her identity would be exposed. At that time, there would be no impact.
The revenge n was still going on.
Mo Chengfengs and Mo Ruyue swaggered into the Emperors royal study.
In an instant, they were surrounded by the guards beside them.
Protector, there are assassins! Protect the emperor!
The guard shouted loudly and drew out the shining saber in his hand, blocking MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng.
Whats going on outside?
The middle-aged man in the royal study frowned. There was actually an assassin in the royal study?
At this time, two Golden Core experts appeared beside the Emperor. The two of them specialized in protecting the Emperors safety.
Emperor, the assassin outside has something to teach you.
A eunuch came into the royal study with something.
The Emperor was very vignt and did not ept the things in the eunuchs hands.
His expression was dignified. Open that thing.
He was afraid that this thing was poisoned and would threaten his personal safety.
The eunuchs body trembled, but he still pretended to be calm and opened the thing in his hand. He found that it was a secret letter.
Then, in front of the emperor, he opened the secret letter in his hand. Then, in front of the Emperor, he read out everything in the secret letter.
What?
After hearing the contents of the secret letter, the Emperor mmed the table and instantly flew into a rage.
Let MO Chengfenge in and see me.
He had never expected that the so-called assassin outside was actually his unfavored former crown prince.
In the blink of an eye, more than twenty years had passed. He had almost forgotten that he had a legitimate son.
Then, an extraordinary man walked in from outside.
The Emperor sized up MO Chengfeng. Indeed, he looked somewhat simr to him.
MO Chengfeng did not kneel before the Emperor. His feelings for this man were veryplicated.
His heart was filled with endless hatred.
If this man had pursued that matter back then, his mother would not have died unjustly.
He even implicated his mothers nsmen.
Thinking of this, MO Chengfeng couldnt control his emotions.
The father and son looked at each other. MO Tianxing was the first to speak. Its MO Chengfeng?
It seems that Imperial Father has long forgotten about me.
MO Chengfeng smiled helplessly. There was a hint of destion in his smile.
Actually, it wasnt that he hadnt expected this oue.
Is what the letter said true? The real traitor was the Empress?
Does Imperial Father not have any doubts about what happened back then?
MO Chengfengs voice turned colder.
He didnt believe that MO Tian Xing didnt have any doubts about what happened back then.
Are you doubting me?
Do you still need me to question this? Imperial Father, you are so cruel. If it wasnt for your indulgence, how could my mother die?
MO Chengfeng looked at the man and his attitude. It seemed like he did not care about what happened back then. He only wanted to take revenge.
Father, I identally dislocated the Crown Princes hands a few days ago.
Father wont me me, right?
Hearing MO Chengfengs words, the Emperors face revealed disbelief.
Thats your younger brother.
He had actually done such a terrible thing to the Crown Prince.
This MO Chengfeng must not be left alive.
Little brother? If the younger brother wanted to kill the older brother, what should the older brother do?
MO Chengfengughed coldly.
He didnt even bother to find trouble with MO He, but MO He was rushing to find trouble with him.
Ive alreadyid the truth out in front of you, but youre still protecting the murderer. Ive overestimated you.
Thest bit of hope in MO Chengfengs heart was also wiped out.
He wanted to clear his mothers name and prove her innocence.
However, when the truth wasid out here, the Emperor still chose to turn a blind eye.
From this, it could be seen that the Emperor was actually an aplice in the incident back then.
Since that was the case, he really did not need to worry about anything else.
Unfilial son, what do you want to do?
MO Tianxing stared at MO Chengfeng warily.
MO Chengfeng turned around and said calmly, Its time to admit that the person who framed my mother back then went to see the King of Hell.
None of them can escape.
MO Tian Xings face darkened. What happened back then is already in the past. Why dont you let go? Did he have to cause chaos in the entire pce?
How can I let go of such a blood feud?
Either she dies or I die!
MO Chengfengs eyes emitted a cold light, and his tone was unusually firm.
This time, he came back for revenge.
What youre doing is meaningless. Will your mothere back after you take revenge?
MO Tian Xing tried his best to dissuade him.
Although the Empress was old and weak, she was still his woman.
The Empress had been by his side for more than twenty years. How could he watch the Empress be killed by his own son?
Although my mother wonte back, she will see her son take revenge for her in heaven. Only then will his soul rest in peace.
If he had been a little more ruthless, he would have killed the emperor of this country as well.
However, once the Emperor died, the entire Xiliang would be in chaos.
For the sake of the innocent civilians, he decided to let this man go.
The real mastermind was still the Empress.
In that case, you cant me Zhen.
MO Tian Xings pupils constricted, his eyes filled with sinister intent.
He had so many sons, but he couldnt possibly have one less son.
It was not his intention to marry MO Chengfengs mother.
The person he liked was the current empress.
Therefore, even though the Empress had done so many inhumane things, he had turned a blind eye.
Of course, he did not always like the Empress.
Feelings were the easiest to change.
The Empress would grow old, and there would never be ack of beautiful women in the harem.
Naturally, he would also like those beautiful women.
A Jiedan Stage expert attacked MO Chengfeng.
MO Chengfeng dodged the attack. He did not expect the Emperor to attack him.
His eyes were filled with disappointment.
His own biological father actually wanted to kill him.
It was said that a vicious tiger would not eat its cubs. MO Tianxing did not have the slightest bit of mercy towards him.
Then, MO Chengfeng started fighting with the Golden Core cultivator.
How could he be a match for a Golden Core cultivator?
A palm was sent flying out of the royal study. He spat out a mouthful of blood and stood up from the ground, trembling slightly..
Chapter 691 - 691: The Emperor Is Heartless
Chapter 691 - 691: The Emperor Is Heartless
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyues face tensed up when she saw MO Chengfeng being beaten out. She hurriedly went up to help.
Naturally, she was no match for a Golden Core cultivator.
The opponent was barehanded, and she didnt even have a 100% chance of catching the de.
Senior Brother, are you alright? MO Ruyue asked worriedly.
Im fine.
MO Chengfeng shook his head. How could the injuries on his bodypare to the injuries on his heart?
His father wanted to kill him!
Thest bit of hope he had for his loved ones was shattered.
He felt extremely sad.
Golden Core cultivators were very strong. MO Ruyue didnt know where this dog Emperor found a Golden Core cultivator.
In the immortal sects, this Golden Core cultivator could generally be an elder.
The Golden Core cultivator in front of him had white hair and looked quite old, but his body was quite strong.
MO Ruyue watched as her opponent continued to attack. Her basic Neb Sword Technique was clearly no match for a Golden Core cultivator.
It was not easy to deal with a Golden Core cultivator.
MO Ruyue could only continue to use her Heavens Wrath skill.
A simple apology could cause the other party to be struck by a bolt of lightning.
With a loud rumble, sparks flew in all directions.
The Golden Core cultivator was struck by a bolt of lightning and fell to the ground.
Perhaps it was because his cultivation was high that he was not electrocuted. The Golden Core cultivator slowly stood up from the ground, but his footsteps were unstable.
He staggered and almost fell.
The Emperor and another Golden Core cultivator walked out and saw this scene.
Seeing the Golden Core cultivator being struck by lightning, the two of them were shocked.
Fortunately, Golden Core cultivators could still stand up.
F*ck, so tenacious?
MO Ruyue couldnt help butin. This Golden Core cultivator was actually able to resist her heavenly punishment.
His strength is still quite strong.
An ordinary person might have to lie on the ground for a long time to wake up after being punished by the heavens.
The golden core state cultivator only rested for a short while before getting up.
Of course, she didnt only use her skill once.
Since the Golden Core cultivator had already stood up, she would let him fall down again.
Im sorry
With an apology, another heavenly punishment came down. This time, the Golden Core cultivator could no longer stand up.
He fell to the ground, unconscious.
Whats going on?
MO Tianxing widened his eyes and looked up at the sky.
The sky was cloudless. How could such a strange scene appear?
MO Ruyue looked at MO Tianxing. Even though the other party was the Emperor, her attitude was still arrogant.
This man was the emperor of Xiliang, not her.
There was no need to be so polite to this man, not to mention that this Emperor had injured Eldest Senior Brother MO Chengfeng.
What else can happen? Even the heavens couldnt stand it anymore. As the saying goes, a vicious tiger wont eat its cubs. Emperor, you are even more vicious than a tiger. No, you are not worthy of beingpared to a tiger.
MO Ruyue said sarcastically.
After all, a vicious tiger will not eat its cubs.
This strange voice angered the Emperor.
Little unruly person, how dare you insult the emperor.
The eunuch at the side immediately opened his mouth to speak.
It was as if he was afraid that the emperor himself would not be able to speak.
MO Chengfeng stood in front of MO Ruyue.
Lets see who dares to do so.
He couldnt beat those Golden Core cultivators, but he could still beat the other guards.
If he couldnt even beat those guards, he wouldnt havee back for revenge. He did not expect that MO Tianxing actually had a Golden Core expert by his side.
At this moment, the Empress also brought arge group of people over.
When she received the news, she quickly brought all the troops over and prepared to capture MO Chengfeng.
Today, MO Chengfeng definitely could not leave the Imperial Pce alive.
She was already fully prepared.
Hopefully, it was still not toote.
Emperor, ChenQie hase to save you. the Empress said loudly.
Another few hundred guards came and surrounded MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng.
It was as if the two of them could not escape even if they had wings.
MO Tianxing nced at the Empress. He felt a little ill in his heart, but he knew that he could no longer leave the Empress.
So, let bygones be bygones.
Men, execute the two assassins on the spot and kill them without mercy.
The Empress had long wished for MO Chengfeng to die. As for who the woman beside MO Chengfeng was, she did not want to know at all.
No matter who it was, as long as they were by MO Chengfengs side, they had to be killed.
It was better to kill wrongly than to let go.
Being able to follow MO Chengfeng, they were naturally enemies.
MO Chengfeng held onto MO Ruyue tightly.
Senior brother, leave these people to me.
MO Ruyues expression was serious. At most, she would just apologize a few more times.
Fortunately, he was only apologizing and not asking her to kneel.
After that, MO Ruyue apologized several times in a row. Her voice was so soft that no one could hear her except MO Chengfeng who was beside her.
As his voice fell, a few rumbling sounds could be heard. Almost all the guards at the scene fell to the ground, unconscious.
When MO Tian Xing saw this scene, he was already dumbstruck.
He did not know how to describe his feelings at this moment.
Was he wrong? Even the heavens were unwilling to stand on his side.
The Empress was also stunned. She could not believe what she was seeing.
All the guards were struck by lightning and fell to the ground.
How How did this happen?
The Empress stuttered.
MO Chengfeng knew what was going on, but he would not reveal it.
Just let them think that this was a sign from the heavens.
See, see, even the heavens are helping me.
Hua Suxin, your good days are over.
MO Chengfeng held his long sword as he approached Hua Suxin step by step.
Hua Suxin was terrified and quickly hid behind MO Tianxing.
Your Majesty, please save this concubine.
This MO Chengfeng is crazy.
Hua Suxin was so frightened by MO Chengfeng that her face turned pale, and her entire body couldnt help but tremble.
Because she would never have thought that even the heavens would help MO Chengfeng.
What do you want to do to the Empress?
MO Tian Xing shielded Hua Suxin behind him.
A life for a life, its only right and proper.
MO Chengfeng said coldly, pointing his sword at Hua Suxin.
Hua Suxin, who was hiding behind MO Tianxing, was trembling. Her face had turned extremely pale.
It you want to kill the Empress, then kill Zhen as well.
MO Tianxing felt that MO Chengfeng would not kill him. After all, he was the ruler of a country.
Therefore, he puffed out his chest, his face filled with indifference.
MO Chengfeng sneered. Dont think that I wont dare to kill you.
If you kill me, then the entire Xiliang will be in chaos. At that time, everyone in the world will hate you.
MO Tianxing looked at MO Chengfengs expressionless face and could not help but feel a little fearful.
Youre not the only emperor in the history of Xi Liang. If the MO family falls, there will naturally be other family names to take over.
Hearing Mo Chengfengs outrageous words, MO Tianxing was finally afraid. He didnt want to lose the inheritance of his ancestor in his hands.
At that time, how could he have the face to meet the ancestor?
Dont you want to be the emperor?
This kind of muddle-headed and heartless emperor, whoever wants to be him can be him. 1, MO Chengfeng, dont care. Not everyone liked to be an emperor. Hand her over. Right now, I only want to kill her.
MO Chengfengs tone was full of warning. Your Majesty, dont!
Hua Suxin shook her head and begged.
But what kind of person was the Emperor? How could he be soft-hearted just because of Hua Suxins pleading?
He pushed Hua Suxin away mercilessly.
Hua Suxin, back then, you were the one who murdered MO Chengfengs mother. You actually managed to deceive everyone and caused Consort Huis entire family to be executed
MO Tian Xing immediately turned hostile.
Emperors should know how to make choices.
Emperors were heartless.
He couldnt ruin his empire because of a woman.
Even though Hua Suxin had been by his side for many years, she could notpare to the throne that he had painstakingly sat on.
A woman could notpare to the life of an emperor, nor could shepare to the vastnd..
Chapter 692 - 692: Big Mistake
Chapter 692 - 692: Big Mistake
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Chengfeng looked at this scene and felt that it was ironic.
Hua Suxin was pushed out by MO Tianxing.
He watched helplessly as his son walked towards his woman. His expression was calm, and no one knew what he was thinking.
MO Ruyue silently watched this scene, feeling a mix of emotions.
The Emperor was actually so heartless towards his own woman.
She was also very heartless to her son.
This man still loved her the most.
She didnt have any feelings or sincerity for the people around him. She really did not know how MO Chengfeng had grown up in such an environment.
No father, no mother.
Your Majesty
Hua Suxins voice was filled with despair. She shouldnt have believed that this man was so heartless.
Shut up. It seems that what you did is karma.
Hearing the mans words, Hua Suxin was momentarily speechless.
She was indeed at fault for what happened back then, but was it all her fault?
It was definitely not just her fault.
Empress, if you have anything else to say, hurry up and say it. In a while, you might not be able to speak anymore.
MO Chengfeng said casually. Since things had alreadye to this, he would never let Hua Suxin off.
Only by killing this woman could he avenge his mother.
Hahahaha
Hua Suxin looked at the emotionless MO Tianxing andughed loudly.
MO Chengfeng, bengong only hates that I didnt kill you earlier. If I had killed you back then, today wouldnt have happened. Hua Suxin red fiercely at MO Chengfeng.
You and vour slut Concubine Mother deserve to die
Before he could finish, a sharp sword light shed.
Boiling hot blood sprayed out and sttered onto MO Tian Xings body.
His bright yellow dragon robe was stained with blood.
Moreover, it was the blood of the Empress of Xi Liang.
His son had killed his wife, but MO Tianxing did not feel the slightest bit of heartache.
MO Tian Xing only nced at the woman who had fallen at his feet before looking away.
Hua Suxins eyes widened as she stared at MO Tian Xing.
However, after she fell, she could no longer get up. Youve already taken revenge. What else do you want now?
Its not over yet. Why are you in such a hurry?
MO Chengfengs lips curled into a bloodthirsty arc.
Only Hua Xin died. Back then, the Zhang family lost dozens of people. One report, one report. How could I let them go?
Looking at the bloodthirsty smile on MO Chengfengs face, MO Tianxing was afraid of this man from the bottom of his heart.
Youre really a lunatic. Madman? Perhaps, I am indeed a lunatic.
MO Chengfeng sneered.
He turned around and left, his hand gripping the hilt of his sword tightly.
Next, it was time for him to kill.
MO Ruyue withdrew her gaze from MO Tianxing and followed MO Chengfeng.
Watching MO Chengfeng leave, MO Tian Xing closed his eyes and calmly instructed, Bury the Empress.
After saying that, he turned around and left this troublesome ce.
He could not stop MO Chengfeng from returning for revenge.
Actually, MO Chengfengs act of taking revenge this time had solved one of his problems.
The Hua Family was growing stronger and stronger, and their power was already threatening his imperial power.
He had never thought of a good way to eradicate the Hua family.
He didnt expect MO Chengfeng to return.
From a certain perspective, he should thank MO Chengfeng.
Everyone was just a chess piece in his hands.
There was no other way. From the moment he sat in this position, he had to be clear that nothing was more important than his throne and empire.
It was normal to sacrifice some people when necessary.
The Emperor was not emotionless, but he was too good at weighing the pros and cons.
He knew how to give up.
He could have more women and more children, but how was he going to exin to his ancestors if he lost the country?
He could not abandon the country left behind by his ancestors.
Overnight, the Hua n was massacred, leaving no survivors.
No one knew who had done this. They only felt that it was too ruthless.
Ruyue, I want to be alone.
MO Chengfeng raised his sword and spoke in a low voice.
Alright.
MO Ruyue was tactful enough not to follow her, and could only watch as MO Chengfeng left.
She turned around and looked at the corpses on the ground. These were all killed by MO Chengfeng.
She wanted to help, but MO Chengfeng stopped her.
He said he didnt want her hands to be stained with blood, he didnt want her to be filled with sin.
The whole of Washington became a purgatory.
MO Ruyue found some wine and sprinkled it on the corpse before throwing it on the ground.
mes of fire instantly shot up, and soon, the entire pce was set aze.
The light of the fire reflected MO Ruyues face, and the smell of burnt flesh lingered in the air.
When the fire in the pce was extinguished, it was a wastnd.
MO Ruyuey on the bed as the scene of the murder shed through her mind again and again.
Although she didnt kill anyone, she felt an indescribable feeling in her heart when she saw MO Chengfeng kill someone.
Especially when he saw those people fall at his feet.
At that time, MO Chengfengs eyes were bloodshot from killing, and his clothes were stained with blood. He looked very terrifying.
MO Chengfeng was the one who killed everyone in the pce, and she was the one who set the entire pce on fire.
Sheid in the inn for a day and a night, but did not see MO Chengfeng return.
Worried about MO Chengfengs safety, MO Ruyue went out to look for him.
Not long after she left, she saw a row of guards blocking her way.
MO Ruyues face was full of wariness, and she almost drew her sword.
A eunuch came up to MO Ruyue and said with a smile, Miss, Im here on the
Emperors orders to invite you into the pce.
Although MO Ruyue was not afraid of these people, she was curious about how they found this ce.
How did you know I was here?
The eunuch nodded and bowed, smiling. Naturally, the Crown Prince told us where Young Lady is.
Crown Prince? Are you talking about MO?
MO Ruyue frowned. Didnnt MO Chengfeng already chop off MO Hes arms?
It was absolutely impossible for him to continue to be the Crown Prince if he cut off his arms.
So, what was going on?
MO Ruyue did not quite understand.
His heart was filled with doubts.
The eunuch shook his head. No, no, no. The current Crown Prince, MO Chengfeng, is not MO He.
Eldest Senior Brother?
MO Ruyue was stunned.
It had only been two days, yet the position of Crown Prince had fallen to MO Chengfeng. It felt like things were developing a little too quickly.
What had happened?
Thus, MO Ruyue followed these people into the pce, wanting to find out more.
She was not afraid of these people ying tricks. If they wanted toy their hands on her, they would be making a big mistake.
She would let these people know what the means of the demon worlds saintess were.
Of course, if the other party had no malicious intent.
Naturally, she would not cause trouble for him like a lunatic.
MO Ruyue got into the carriage and was brought into the Imperial Pce.
However, she did not see MO Chengfeng at first sight. Instead, she was left in the Eastern Pce.
The pce maids in the pce did not speak. They all lowered their heads, afraid that they would get into trouble.
Not long after, MO Chengfeng finally returned.
Senior Brother!
MO Ruyue saw MO Chengfeng walk in and quickly stood up.
Suddenly, MO Chengfeng hugged MO Ruyue. This hug made MO Ruyue confused and confused.
Everyone, retreat!
MO Chengfeng berated him, his voice imposing without anger.
Yes.
The pce maids hurriedly left the pce.
MO Ruyue felt awkward. She did not quite understand MO Chengfengs hug.
What had happened in the past two days?
Chapter 693 - 693: A World of the Strong
Chapter 693 - 693: A World of the Strong
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After the pce maids left, MO Ruyue looked up at the handsome man in front of her and asked curiously, Senior Brother, whats wrong?
At this moment, MO Chengfeng slowly released MO Ruyue.
MO Chengfeng was wearing a navy blue robe, and there was a hint of worry in his eyes.
Ive finally avenged my mother. Ive finally let that man announce to the world that he has cleared my mothers name and cleared my mothers name
Unfortunately, its toote.
MO Chengfeng was in low spirits.
MO Ruyue could onlyfort her,At least let everyone know that it was Hua
Suxin who framed your mother, and prove your mothers innocence. Then, MO Ruyue asked curiously,Are you the Crown Prince now?
What Crown Prince? I didnt agree to it at all.
MO Chengfeng scolded in a low voice. He had never promised to be the Crown Prince.
Although MO Tianxing had said that he wanted him to be the Crown Prince, he did not want to wait for this unlucky Crown Prince at all.
Oh, I see.
MO Ruyue had thought that MO Chengfeng was going to stay in the Western Liang Country and continue to be the Crown Prince.
Actually, MO Chengfeng could do whatever he wanted.
The Demon Lord only asked her to avenge MO Chengfeng, but he did not say that MO Chengfeng could not be the Crown Prince.
Now that MO Chengfeng had gotten his revenge and even cleared his mothers many years of injustice, he wondered what MO Chengfeng would do next.
Then Eldest Senior Brother, are you going to stay in Xi Liang?
Although the Emperor was not good enough, Xi Liang was indeed MO Chengfengs hometown.
Now that he had taken revenge, shouldnt he stay in his hometown and continue to develop?
MO Chengfeng lowered his head and looked at the woman in front of him.
Ruyue had apanied him all the way. He was not facing everything alone.
MO Ruyues eyes met the pair of dark eyes, and she shifted her gaze away.
Why was he staring at her?
It was quite embarrassing.
Where does Junior Sister want Senior Brother to stay?
MO Chengfeng stared at the woman in front of him. Ruyue seemed a little shy?
Shouldnt he be the one deciding this kind of problem?
MO Ruyue secretlyined in her heart, but she said,Senior brother, you can stay anywhere you want, as long as senior brother is happy.
If he wanted to be the Crown Prince, he could stay in Xi Liang. If he didnt want to be the Crown Prince, he could return to the Demon Realm.
What a simple matter.
It wasnt thatplicated.
Senior Brother wants to hear Ruyues opinion. MO Chengfeng passed the question to MO Ruyue. This put MO Ruyue in a difficult position.
This
MO Ruyue scratched her head. Why was he asking her?
She felt that her opinion was not important.
Didnt this depend on MO Chengfengs opinion?
After thinking for a while, MO Ruyue could only bite the bullet and say,Although there are people serving the Crown Prince, as a member of the Demon Realm, Junior Sister still hopes that Senior Brother can return to the Demon Realm.
Without Eldest Senior Brother, the Demon Realm will have one less person.
They had been ssmates for a few years, and they had feelings for each other.
Naturally, they still hoped to live together as usual.
Of course, this is just my personal opinion. Senior brother, you dont necessarily have to listen to me. Senior brother, you should respect your own thoughts.
MO Ruyue did not know whether MO Chengfeng wanted to stay in Xi Liang as the Crown Prince or return to the Devil World to be the Eldest Senior Brother.
In any case, each had their own advantages. Alright then, Ive decided.
MO Chengfeng nodded. He instantly had an idea.
Senior Brother, where do you want to stay? asked MO Ruyue hurriedly.
Lets return to the Demon Realm.
That ce was much better than this pce.
At the very least, there were not so many plots and conspiracies.
Junior Sister Ruyue was still there.
Thats good.
MO Ruyue heaved a sigh of relief. Fortunately, they had returned to the Devil Realm.
Actually, the Demon Realm was quite good.
Then when are we going back?
MO Ruyue asked.
As soon as he finished speaking, a bright yellow figure appeared at the door.
Neither MO Ruyue nor MO Chengfeng bowed.
MO Chengfeng did not like MO Tian Xing to begin with. Seeing that MO Tian Xing did not kill this man, he was already merciful. It was impossible for him to bow to him.
MO Ruyue did not bow because she felt that this dog Emperor was not as powerful as her, so why should she bow to him?
He didnt eat the dog Emperors food, nor did he have anything that belonged to the dog Emperor, so he couldnt find a reason to bow to the dog Emperor. In addition, MO Chengfeng did not bow, so she felt even more confident.
She didnt believe that the Emperor would dare to do anything to her.
MO Tianxing naturally did not me MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng for not bowing.
He had no right to me.
AR soon as he entered. he went straight to the point and said.Chengfeng. stay and be the Crown Prince. You are my Di son, and the position of Crown Prince should belong to you.
Now, other than MO Chengfeng, there was no other child under his knee that was suitable to be the Crown Prince.
Although there would be more Dragon Sons in the future, he still wanted a Crown Prince to be more at ease.
MO Chengfeng was very suitable for the position of Crown Prince. His methods were decisive and efficient, much better than MO He.
MO He was too indecisive and impatient.
Now that MO He was crippled, he was even less suitable for the position of Crown Prince.
Ive already told you, whoever wants the position of Crown Prince can go.
This has nothing to do with me!
Ruyue, lets return to the Demon Realm!
After saying that, MO Chengfeng brought MO Ruyue outside.
Alright.
Mo Ruyue quickly followed behind MO Chengfeng.
She stopped beside the dog Emperor and said,Not everyone wants the throne!
He left a stunned MO Tianxing behind.
MO Ruyue and MO Qingcheng left the Imperial Pce together. No one dared to stop them. Even if someone did, they would not be able to stop them.
After leaving the pce, they returned to their original inn.
MO Ruyue felt that MO Chengfeng seemed to be a little absent-minded. She did not know what was wrong with him.
Senior brother, now that youve taken your revenge, why are you still so unhappy?
Shouldnt he be happier after taking revenge?
Those bad guys were already dead. How good was that?
MO Chengfeng took the opportunity to sit on a chair at the side. He held a blue and white porcin teacup in his hand and spun it unconsciously. His dark eyes were filled with mixed feelings.
Now that Ive taken my revenge, I dont know what to do.
In the past days, he had been living in hatred every day, and his goal had always been revenge.
Other than revenge, he had not thought of anything else.
Now that he had achieved his goal of revenge, his heart felt a little empty.
He didnt know what to do next.
MO Ruyue saw the confusion in MO Chengfengs eyes and knew that he couldnt find the direction of his efforts.
She had experienced this kind of confusion before, but it was only temporary.
Of course, its to make myself stronger. Ill work hard to earn money to buy the things I want to buy. Ill live well and enjoy the joy of life.
For people like her now, no matter what their goal was, the ultimate goal was to make herself richer and live a better life.
Here, bing rich was also her goal. There was an even more important goal, which was to make herself stronger.
After all, this was a world where the strong preyed on the weak. Without strength, one could only be killed and bullied.
Mo Chengfengs looked at Mo Ruyue with a deep gaze. He felt that he was not as open-minded as his junior sister.
Moreover, didnt you say before that you would return to the Demon Realm with me after taking revenge? He would leave the Demon Realm when he had the chance in the future.
MO Ruyue blinked her eyes. Had this guy forgotten what she had said before?
She still remembered it..
Chapter 694 - 694: Sell for a Good Price
Chapter 694 - 694: Sell for a Good Price
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Hearing MO Ruyues words, MO Chengfeng gradually understood what he should do next.
Ruyue, thank you. I know what I should do next.
The light in MO Chengfengs eyes became more and more determined.
There was no longer the confusion and hesitation from before.
Seeing MO Chengfeng like this, MO Ruyue was relieved.
Next, should we set off for the Demon Realm?
Although Xi Liang Country was very good, it was a pity that she did not have money on her, so she could not buy anything she wanted.
Yes, we can return to the Demon Realm without worry.
When he returned to the Demon Realm, he would focus on cultivation.
He hoped that he could increase his cultivation as soon as possible.
Senior brother, do you really not have any attachment to Xi Liang?
Theres nothing here thats worthy of my nostalgia. I want to pay my respects to my mother before I leave.
MO Chengfeng said with a heavy heart.
She had taken revenge and her mothers injustice had been washed clean.
He had no concern for Xiliang.
When the two of them were about to leave, they went to Consort Huis mausoleum together.
MO Chengfeng brought the tributes and ced them one by one in front of the tombstone. He knelt down and kowtowed three times to the tombstone.
Mother, I have already taken revenge. Hua Suxin and the others have already received the punishment they deserve. Mother can rest in peace now
MO Chengfeng said in front of the tombstone and told everything he had done to Consort Huis tomb.
MO Ruyue stood behind MO Chengfeng.
She couldnt help but wonder if ghosts really existed in this world.
If there really was a ghost, then where was the ghost of the original owner of her body?
She didnt believe in ghosts and monsters at first.
It wasnt until her soul upied the body of the original host that she began to believe in some so-called ghosts and monsters.
Mother, Im leaving Xi Liang. I dont know when Ill be back in the future. MO Chengfeng kowtowed three more times after he finished speaking.
Behind him, MO Ruyue was worried that this guys forehead would be bruised.
At this moment, a group of soldiers came from the mausoleum and surrounded the ce.
MO Ruyue looked back and revealed a helpless expression. Why was it the Emperor again?
Was it because MO Chengfeng didnt want to kill him that he was in such a hurry to get killed?
Senior Brother, that man hase over.
MO Ruyue called out softly as she watched MO Tianxing walk over.
MO Chengfeng stood up from the ground and turned around to look at MO Tianxing, who was rushing over.
His good-looking brows were tightly knitted together. Clearly, he was also somewhat puzzled by this scene.
The two of them stared at Mo Tian Xing.
Prince, please return to the pce.
Prince, please return to the pce.
Prince, please return to the pce.
The guards suddenly knelt on the ground with their heads lowered and shouted in unison.
He asked the Crown Prince to return to the pce three times in a row.
MO Tianxing, what are you doing?
MO Chengfeng shouted MO Tianxings name in anger.
One had to know that in Xi Liang, the emperors name was not something that could be casually called.
Even the Crown Prince could not casually call the Emperor by his name.
Otherwise, it would be a contempt for the imperial power and a great disrespect to the emperor.
MO Tianxing missed MO Chengfeng and came to Consort Huis tombstone.
He nced at the tribute in front of Consort Huis tomb.
He put his palms together and closed his eyes.
After a while, he opened his eyes and turned around.
You are Zhens Di son, you should return with Zhen. Xi Liang needs you, and Zhen needs you.
MO Chengfengughed coldly. You didnt seem to understand what I said earlier. Ill say it onest time. I will never go back. What does Xiliang have to do with me, and what do you have to do with me? Whether the fate of Xi Liang is good or bad, I dont care at all.
Even if Xi Liang is destroyed, 1 wont feel sad.
MO Chengfengs eyes were filled with coldness.
Dont think of using any excuse to make him be Xi Liangs puppet.
He was not that great.
How can you be so selfish?
The blood of the royal family flows in your veins!
MO Tian Xings eyes widened in anger, his turbid eyes bloodshot.
He was really angry. He did not expect his son to say such irresponsible words.
Theres no point in talking to you. Our paths are different and we cant work together. From now on, you walk your open path and I walk my wooden bridge. We have nothing to do with each other.
MO Chengfeng found the man in front of himughable.
What did you do earlier?
Now, they were saying that he was the Crown Prince and that he had the blood of the royal family flowing in his veins.
He had lived a miserable life in the pce for more than ten years. Why hadnt he mentioned that he had royal blood flowing in his veins at that time?
Now, it was just that there was no suitable candidate to be the Crown Prince, so they wanted him to take this position.
What a good n!
MO Chengfeng was very clear-headed. He knew that he would not change his mind just because of MO Tianxings words.
He held MO Ruyues hand and did not even look at MO Tianxing. Ruyue, lets go.
He really didnt expect MO Tianxing to actually bring people here.
Who was he trying to show to by doing this?
Did they really think that he would care about the position of Crown Prince?
MO Tianxing watched helplessly as MO Chengfeng left.
He originally thought that MO Chengfeng was trying to reject him, wanting him to lower his status and beg him to be the Crown Prince.
However, he did not expect that MO Chengfeng really did not want to be the Crown Prince.
He felt that the position of Crown Prince was very tempting.
Thinking back, when he was still a prince, he had always coveted the position of Crown Prince.
Although he did not be the Crown Prince, the throne was still his.
Liu Dehai, are there really people in this world who dont care about the position of Crown Prince?
MO Tian Xing asked with a mncholic gaze.
How could there be anyone who was not interested in the position of Crown Prince?
He did not believe it!
This, this servant doesnt know either.
Eunuch Liu felt his forehead full of sweat. How could he dare to discuss the position of Crown Prince?
Even if the Emperor asked him, he would not dare to express his true opinion.
Lets return to the pce.
MO Tianxing turned around and looked deeply at Consort Huis mausoleum.
His woman was buried here.
Then, he turned around and left Consort Huis mausoleum. He was the emperor, and many times, he had no choice.
MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng set foot on the road back to the Devil World.
Along the way, MO Ruyue could clearly feel that MO Chengfengs mood had improved, and his eyes were no longer as confused as before.
Senior Brother, do you know where I can sell treasures?
MO Ruyue suddenly remembered something very important.
She also had a few ck Heart Fruits with her, and she was going to sell them.
There should be people buying it in the market, right?
I wonder how much its worth now?
What treasures do you have to sell?
MO Chengfeng stared nkly at MO Ruyue. This girl couldnt be thinking of selling the Seven-Colored Fire Seed, right?
Although the seven-colored fire seed was not very useful to them, it was not very useful.
However, this treasure was worth collecting.
The Seven-Colored Fire Seed must not be sold.
l heard that the ck Heart Fruit I picked with my senior brothers on Bird excrement mountain can be sold for a good price. I still have two left, so I want to sell them.
MO Ruyue moved the bundle forward.
If he had enough money, he would buy a storage ring.
It was not convenient to go to Xi Liang, so he did not mention this matter..
Chapter 695 - 695: Less Than The Best
Chapter 695 - 695: Less Than The Best
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
ck Heart Fruit? He might have to sell it at the Treasure Gathering Pavilion, where he could get a good price.
MO Chengfeng said thoughtfully.
Mo Ruyues beautiful eyes lit up as she hurriedly said, Senior Brother, can you take me to that ce? Ill take care of three meals a day.
She wanted to say that she would split the money 30 C 70 after the matter was done, but after thinking about it, she was reluctant to split the money.
Therefore, he decided to treat Mo Chengfengs to a few meals.
She was so poor now, so he should not take money from her.
Then lets not go back to the Demon Realm first. Lets go to the Treasure
Gathering Pavilion first. Is the Treasure Trove Pavilion far?
If its far, will you go?
Of course, the ck Heart Fruit will go bad if you dont change it.
No matter how far the road was, he had to go.
Money was a little tight.
Dont worry, the Treasure Gathering Pavilion isnt far, because no matter which country, which city, theres almost always a Treasure Gathering Pavilion.
MO Chengfeng smiled faintly, like a spring breeze blowing across thend.
This man was exceptionally charming.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but take a few more nces.
Fortunately, this was his senior brother, so he could size him up openly.
Looks like this Treasure Trove Pavilion is a chain store. I wonder which big shot opened it.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but sigh.
To be able to open a Treasure Trove Pavilion in every city, it meant that the person who opened the Treasure Trove Pavilion was quite wealthy.
His family was extremely wealthy.
Im not sure about this either. No one knows who the master behind the
Treasure Gathering Pavilion is.
Its quite convenient.
MO Chengfeng was quite familiar with the Treasure Gathering Pavilion.
Back then, his storage ring was also exchanged at the Treasure Gathering Pavilion.
The two of them found a city nearby and went straight to the Treasure Gathering Pavilion.
There were not many people in the Treasure Gathering Pavilion, but there were quite a few treasures inside.
As soon as the two of them entered, someone came over to wee them warmly.
Are the two of you here to see the treasures in the Treasure Gathering Pavilion?
The other party asked with a smile.
Mo Ruyue swept her gaze across the surroundings.
Were here to sell treasures.
MO Chengfeng nodded slightly with a gentle smile on his face.
If she hadnt seen this mans ruthless methods with her own eyes, she would have been easily deceived by this man.
At this moment, he was as gentle as jade, like a modest young master.
MO Ruyueined in her heart.
When the shop owner heard that they were here to sell treasures, his smile became even happier.
Please enter
He respectfully invited the two of them inside and then asked curiously, May I know what treasure the two of you are selling?
MO Chengfeng gestured to MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue hurriedly took out two ck Heart Fruits from her bag.
When the shop owner saw this, he was slightly stunned. This is a ck Heart Fruit?
Boss, you have good eyesight.
Mo Ruyue immediately ttered him and said,Does the shop owner ept this?
Yes, of course Ill take it. Can you let me take a look?
Sure.
MO Ruyue readily agreed, her fingers tapping rhythmically on the table.
Waiting for the boss to give her a good price.
At this moment, a servant came over and poured tea for them.
Soon, the owner had his eyes on the ck Heart Fruit.
This ck Heart Fruit is not bad.
How much is it worth?
MO Ruyue was delighted and asked directly.
It was probably worth a good price. The boss raised two fingers.
Twenty thousand taels?
MO Ruyue felt that she was going to make a fortune this time.
One ck Heart Fruit was worth twenty thousand taels, and two ck Heart Fruits were worth forty thousand taels. No, no, no. Its two hundred taels.
Boss, are you kidding me?
Mo Ruyue felt as if a bucket of cold water had been poured over her.
The ck Heart Fruit is indeed good, but the color of this ck Heart Fruit is not good. It should have been plucked for some time.
MO Ruyue looked incredulous. Although its been a while since I took it off, it shouldnt be worth only two hundred taels! I remember that the market price is five thousand taels for one. Boss, dont cheat me.
He was really angered to death.
If you had just plucked them, they would indeed be worth five thousand taels each. However, you have already plucked them for some time. The color is not bright enough
The boss looked troubled.
It seemed like he didnt want to ept MO Ruyues ck Heart Fruit.
Boss, just add more points. MO Ruyue begged.
l cant add any more.
Boss, please do me a favor. Add more, add more, and Ill sell. The boss gritted his teeth and said,Add another 500 taels at most.
MO Chengfeng picked up the two ck Heart Fruits on the table.
His clear voice sounded. The color doesnt affect the effect of the ck Heart Fruit, nor does it affect the taste of the ck Heart Fruit. Moreover, there are only a limited number of ck Heart Fruits. There are only a few of them every year, so they are considered rare.
Although the market price fluctuates, each one is at least three thousand taels. If you want to buy one for five hundred taels, how much profit can you get from it?
When the boss heard MO Chengfengs words, his expression became a little awkward.
It seemed that this man in front of her was an expert.
MO Ruyues eyes were filled with admiration.
Eldest Senior Brother was awesome!
How would she know about this?
If it wasnt for MO Chengfeng, she might have been ruthlessly ripped off by this boss today.
We dont want to make things difficult for you. Five thousand taels, Ill give you both.
MO Chengfeng stood up, holding two ck Heart Fruits in his hands, as if he was about to leave.
MO Ruyue quickly stood up and pretended to leave.
The boss sighed in his heart. This man was not easy to fool. If it was this girl, he would have fooled her long ago.
He could only admit that he was unlucky when he met an expert.
Alright, two five thousand taels. Ill go get the silver.
The boss sighed and left the room.
It was rare to encounter such a cunning seller.
Eldest Senior Brother, MO Ruyue said excitedly, youre so awesome! Youre so awesome! I really admire you!
Hearing Mo Ruyues words, MO Chengfeng blushed.
The feeling of being worshipped was pretty good.
Her beautiful and clear eyes were full of stars.
Its nothing. I just understand.
MO Chengfeng pretended to be humble.
He suddenly thought of something and asked, Whats awesome?
It means very powerful. MO Ruyue exined.
l see. Thats a new term.
MO Chengfeng felt that the word awesome was quite interesting.
Not long after, the boss handed five thousand taels of silver to MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue also happily handed two ck Heart Fruits to the boss.
When they were leaving, the boss said to MO Ruyue , If you have any treasures in the future,e and sell them here.
Sure, sure.
MO Ruyue put away the five thousand taels of silver.
He felt very happy.
This could be considered her first bucket of gold since she came here.
The boss sent the two of them out of the Treasure Gathering Pavilion.
Although they didnt get much profit this time, they still got some.
To be able to pluck the ck Heart Fruit, it meant that his ability was not bad.
MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng walked on the road with light footsteps.
MO Ruyue was happy because she had earned money from the game.
In modern times, it was equivalent to MO Ruyue earning 5,000 yuan a day. How many people only earned 5,000 yuan a month?
She already had 5,000 yuan a day. Wasnt that amazing?
Of course, he couldntpare to those big bosses who earned tens of millions a day.
Its not enough topare with the top, but its better than the bottom.
Junior Sister, be careful.
MO Chengfeng grabbed MO Ruyues waist and pulled her, pressing her against his chest.
A few people ran over in a hurry.
MO Chengfeng only let go of MO Ruyue after they had gone over.
Are these people rushing to reincarnate? Dont you even look at the road? MO Ruyue angrily cursed at the backs of those people.
If not for MO Chengfeng, she would have been the one knocked down.
What kind of person was this?
Chapter 696 - 696: It’s Really Good If Everyone Said It’s Good
Chapter 696 - 696: Its Really Good If Everyone Said Its Good
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Senior Brother, thank you for earlier.
MO Ruyue turned around and thanked MO Chengfeng.
Suddenly he thought of what to say, Senior Brother, I invite you to have a meal?
It was all thanks to MO Chengfeng. Otherwise, she would have been cheated by the shop owner this time.
He could treat MO Chengfeng to a meal.
He would no longer be careful about the cost of a meal.
Why do you suddenly want to treat me to a meal?
MO Chengfeng raised his eyebrows slightly, his dark eyes carrying a trace of anticipation.
Why did Junior Sister treat him to a meal?
Its all thanks to Senior Brother that I can earn so much money this time. Isnt it only right to treat Senior Brother to a meal?
MO Ruyue said sincerely.
She liked toin and take revenge. Just because of this?
This reason did not make him ecstatic.
He seemed to be looking forward to the other reason that Ruyue had
mentioned.
Thats right.
What other reason could there be?
MO Ruyue stared at MO Chengfeng in confusion.
Alright then.
MO Chengfeng replied indifferently.
The first ce in the Master Chef Competition can get a reward of 5,000 taels. Is there really such a good thing?
Of course, this is an announcement from the Drunken Immortal Restaurant. Everyone can sign up
Is that so? Then Im going to try my luck too. Ill go too. The boiled cabbage is delicious. Everyone was extremely confident in their skills.
He rushed to register.
What the hell? MO Ruyue was shocked. He can even participate in thepetition by cooking cabbage with water?
Was this a joke?
l think so. How delicious can cabbage be boiled in water?
MO Chengfeng held the silver bone fracture fan in his hand and tapped his other palm asionally.
A reward of five thousand taels of silver. Senior brother, 1 think I can do it again.
MO Ruyue felt that she could do it again.
If she could even register with boiled cabbage in water, then she would know minced meat and eggnt. Wouldnt it be better than boiled cabbage in water?
Do you want to take a look?
MO Chengfeng was also a little interested. To be able to participate in thepetition with boiled cabbage in water, the value of thispetition was questionable.
He felt that he could even participate in thispetition.
Alright, lets go over and take a look.
MO Ruyues eyes sparkled.
She suddenly found another way to make money, which was to earn bounty.
Capturing people can also get rewards.
However, this path was more rugged and full of danger. It was not easy to walk.
Before the Golden Core stage, she felt that she should not do such a thing.
Otherwise, he would not be able to spend his money.
The two of them arrived outside the Drunken Immortal Restaurant. Everyone was signing up.
However, most of them were eliminated in the first round.
Some people looked at the ten taels of material fee and instantly lost interest.
Ten taels of silver was not a small amount.
The first round was to make a good dish. As long as the judges thought it was good, they would advance to the second round.
l want to try!
MO Ruyue was quite confident in her culinary skills. After all, she came from the modern era and had eaten many delicious dishes.
He felt that what he made would definitely be delicious.
The main reason was that MO Ruyue was tempted by the bounty. She just wanted to bite the bullet and charge forward.
Ill join too.
Perhaps it was because he had taken revenge, but he had gradually be interested in other things.
Especially when he saw Ruyue full of energy, he felt that he shouldnt continue to be indignant.
This world was wonderful. As long as he lived well, he would definitely be happy.
Ruyue seemed to be able to heal the wounds in his heart.
MO Ruyue selected the ingredients provided by the Drunken Immortal Restaurant. After thinking for a while, she immediately had an idea.
MO Ruyue was cutting the vegetables clumsily. Her knife skills were not very good.
The judges looked at MO Ruyue and shook their heads. If she couldnt even cut the vegetables properly, it would be strange if the food she cooked could be eaten.
MO Ruyue prepared the ingredients and started to stir-fry them one by one.
The chopped carrots, green beans, golden eggs, and white rice were evenly mixed with the ingredients.
A fragrance wafted out, making people drool.
This girl seems to be doing quite well.
The judge smelled the fragrance and changed his previous opinion.
His knife skills werecking, but the cooking method was novel. He added diced carrots and green beans to the traditional Egg Fried Rice.
He wondered how it would taste.
MO Chengfeng kneaded the dough and made a bowl of ordinary Yang Chun noodles.
MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng brought their finished products to the judges at the same time.
The judge nced at the two of them before eating MO Chengfengs Yang Chun noodles with a calm expression.
Then, the judge picked up a spoon and scooped a spoonful of MO Ruyues fried rice.
After entering the mouth, he closed his eyes and chewed, letting every taste bud feel the taste of the fried rice.
Suddenly, he felt a string snap. This, this fried rice
Everyone stared at the expression of the judges and instantly became nervous.
Is this fried rice too bad?
Otherwise, why would the judges have such a strange expression on their faces?
That girls knife skills were very poor, so it was only natural that the food she made was not delicious.
MO Ruyue looked at the judges reaction and thought to herself, Could it be that the fried rice I made is really too unptable?
That shouldnt be the case. She was only good at such things. It shouldnt be bad.
This fried rice is so delicious.
The judge couldnt help but eat a few more mouthfuls. It was so delicious that he was flying.
It was indeed much more delicious than the traditional Egg Fried Rice.
It was not greasy at all.
The more he ate, the more fragrant it became.
MO Ruyue finally heaved a sigh of relief after hearing the judges ments.
Fortunately, it wasnt bad.
What kind of fried rice is this?
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes. This fried rice was just an ordinary fried rice.
This is Ru Yue fried rice.
Ru Yue brand fried rice, wonderful, delicious, youve advanced. The judge gave MO Ruyue a thumbs up.
This fried rice was indeed very delicious. It was not too much at all.
Judge, what about me?
MO Chengfeng looked at the judges eating Ruyues fried rice and instantly felt a little hungry.
He did not expect Ruyue to have such skills.
The taste of your Yang Chun noodles is average, but its still a littlecking.
However, I saw that your kneading strength is not bad, so you barely advanced. I hope you can perform well in the next round. The judge gave MO Chengfeng an encouraging look.
He hoped that MO Chengfeng could do better in the next round.
A total of ten people entered the second round, including MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng.
In this round, she looked at the dishes made by others and fell into deep thought.
The judges for the second round of thepetition were not the judges from before, but themoners below.
Whoever could satisfy the people would win.
It was really good if everyone said it was good.
Every citizen had three lots in their hands, and the lots represented the votes.
Whoever drew the most lots would win.
The others had already started to get busy, but MO Ruyue was the only one who did not make a move because she was still thinking about what to do.
The key was to let themoners eat the food that everyone said was good.
She turned her head to look at MO Chengfeng and realized that MO Chengfeng was actually making meat buns.
This guy was purely here to experience thepetition, right? He was actually making meat buns, and it was a little ugly.
MO Ruyues mind was jolted as she suddenly thought of something.
Thus, she began her huge project. She cut the vegetables and meat well, alternating between fat and lean, and then skewered them with bamboo sticks.
Thats right, she was going to make kebabs today so that everyone could eat delicious kebabs.
MO Ruyues lips curled into a confident smile. She held a skewer of meat in her hand, took out the charcoal, and prepared all kinds of seasoning powder.
Originally, everyone was watching the others cook and praising their knife skills.
All of a sudden, they realized that MO Ruyues cooking seemed to be very interesting, so they were all attracted by it.
He wondered what delicious food this girl would cook..
Chapter 697 - 697: Barbecue
Chapter 697 - 697: Barbecue
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue brushed oil on the skewers, added cumin and chili powder, and some without chili.
After all, not everyone was used to eating chili.
He also had to take care of the people who didnt eat chili.
The people below only heard the sizzling sound of the meat skewers and the smoke.
What is she doing? Bake something?
It will definitely taste terrible. It might even be burnt.
l think so too. Last time, 1 ate a fish. It was banana and didnt taste good at all. I still like to eat fresh and tender things.
I think she roasted it very well.
As he said that, the person could not help but swallow his saliva. The greedy worms in his stomach had been hooked out.
What exactly was this? It was too fragrant.
Themoners below stared at the thing in Mo Ruyues hand and kept swallowing their saliva.
Senior Brother, it smells so good. Whats so fragrant?
Junior Sister, 1 smell it too. It seems that theres a cookingpetition over there. Its still early. Should we go and take a look?
Sure.
Junior Sister Chen Yuluo replied shyly.
This time, she was no longer following her Sixth Senior Brother Ye Xiong out for missions. Instead, she was following her Third Senior Brother Zhao Xin.
Zhao Xin was stronger than Ye Xiong.
The two of them squeezed into thepetition area. Xin Zhao looked up at the stage and saw several chefs cooking.
A figure caught his attention, and he couldnt help but take a few more nces.
Chen Yuluo also noticed that Xin Zhao seemed to be looking at the woman on the stage a few more times. Her heart sank, and she deliberately made a sound to attract Xin Zhaos attention.
Third Senior Brother, the chef over there seems to be cooking very well. As he spoke, he pulled Zhao Xin!s hand and looked at the other chef.
Xin Zhao nced at Chen Yuluos hand and subconsciously pulled his hand away.
He crossed his arms and looked up at Chef on the stage. He pursed his lips and said,It looks good, but I cant smell any fragrance.
MO Ruyue sprinkled some sesame seeds on the skewers to add some fragrance.
Then, the referee said, Alright, times up. Lets invite the people here toe up and taste it. Whoever tastes good will throw the bamboo stick in their hands to the other party.
MO Ruyue nced at the crowd and was shocked.
Xuanling Immortal Sects third senior brother, Zhao Xin, was also here, along with the little junior sister from before.
She pretended to be calm and turned her head to look at MO Chengfeng. MO Chengfeng did not care about the situation on her side.
Mo Ruyue met Zhao Xins gaze and subconsciously touched her cheek. Now that she had changedpletely, Xin Zhao probably wouldnt be able to recognize her.
She was wearing a mask when she robbed Little Junior Sister, so she probably wouldnt be recognized by Little Junior Sister.
Zhao Xin stared at MO Ruyue and approached her step by step.
Senior Brother, why are you always staring at me?
Chen Yuluo was a little jealous. How could Third Senior Brother stare at other women?
Moreover, he was still staring straight at her.
She stirred her fingers and pouted, looking unhappy.
It was as if she had been bullied by someone.
l didnt stare at her all the time. I just felt that the girls eyes were a little familiar, as if I had seen her somewhere before.
Thinking about it carefully, he could not remember where he had seen it before.
It felt too strange.
Is that so? Wasnt it because she was pretty that she felt like she had seen her eyes somewhere before?
All the men in the world were the same. After seeing a beautiful woman, their eyes could not move away.
Chen Yuluo snorted in his heart and was a little dissatisfied with Zhao Xin.
Xin Zhao smiled helplessly and shook his head. Junior Sister, youve really wronged me.
Chen Yuluo came in front of MO Ruyue and sized her up.
You, you are
Chen Yuluo stared at MO Ruyue for a long time. Suddenly, she seemed to have thought of something. Her eyes widened in disbelief.
He had met her once on the streets of Dongli
MO Ruyues heart skipped a beat when she heard Chen Yuluos voice.
But she still pretended not to know him.
Howe youre a girl?
Have we met before?
l dont know you, Miss. MO Ruyue smiled sweetly.
Chen Yuluo scratched the back of her head. She had been struck by lightning before, so her memory of that time did not seem to be that deep.
Did she really remember wrongly?
Seeing the woman in front of her smile so sincerely, perhaps she really remembered wrongly. Moreover, it was a little dark that night.
l dont know you either. Chen Yuluo snorted and turned her face away.
Miss, here you go. Remember to give good reviews. MO Ruyue didnt care about Chen Yuluos attitude at all.
Fortunately, Chen Yuluo did not recognize her.
It doesnt look delicious at all!
Chen Yuluo looked at the skewers in her hand and a look of disdain shed across her eyes.
MO Ruyue smiled and said nothing.
She didnt want this woman to steal a lot for her.
Last time, he was with Ye Xiong, and this time, he was with Zhao Xin.
This woman was interesting.
It seemed that she was very open-minded in Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Zhao Xin walked up to MO Ruyue with an awkward smile on his face.This is my junior sister Chen Yuluo. She doesnt mean any harm. If its really delicious, we will definitely vote for you.
Alright, thank you.
MO Ruyue smiled and handed the meat skewer to Zhao Xin.
These senior brothers all seemed to be very protective of Chen Yuluo.
Perhaps it was because Chen Yuluo did not have any ugly scars on her face that she was treated like this.
Back when she was in Xuanling Immortal Sect, she did not have such treatment, and the original host naturally did not have such good treatment. This world was so realistic.
Themoners came up to the stage one after another to taste the food. Almost everyone came to MO Ruyues ce to eat the skewers because the skewers were too fragrant and instantly attracted their attention.
Barbecued skewers became their must-have choice, and the rest became secondary choices.
The main reason was that the skewers were more convenient. Almost everyone had a skewer, and they didnt need to pick up food from their bowls with their chopsticks.
The key was that the skewers tasted especially good. After eating one skewer, it was not enough.
This skewer is really delicious. No, I have to get another skewer to eat.
Ill go too, Ill go too. After eating the skewers, I dont want to eat anything
Not long after, somemoners came to MO Ruyues side and looked at the roasted meat in her hands with eager eyes.
The hotel owner watched this scene silently and nodded repeatedly.
Food was the most important thing for the people. If he wanted to make money, he had to grasp the tastes of the people. It seemed that kebabs were more popr.
He immediately had an idea.
Mo Chengfengs watched as everyone went to eat the skewers in Ruyues hands. He was puzzled. Why didnt anyonee to eat his meat buns?
Could it be that she felt that his meat buns were not delicious?
Mo Chengfengs picked up one and started eating. He also picked up one with his other hand and turned around to walk towards Junior Sister Ruyue.
Although the appearance of the buns was not good, the taste was still not bad.
Ruyue, how are things here?
MO Chengfeng casually asked as his gaze fell on MO Ruyues skewers..
Chapter 698 - 698: Low Profile, Low Profile
Chapter 698 - 698: Low Profile, Low Profile
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue smiled and said in a good mood, I feel alright at the moment. I should be able to enter the finals.
MO Ruyue did not expect that she would be able to sessfully squeeze into the finals with her second-best level.
Everything was a pleasant surprise.
Senior Brother, whats the situation on your side?
Dont mention it. There arent many people at my ce. Theyre afraid that Ill poison the buns.
MO Chengfeng shrugged his shoulders and continued to eat the bun. He finished it in two or three bites.
This bun was originally very small and had a thin skin and a lot of meat. Those people actually didnt want to try his bun.
It could be seen that they were a group of people who did not have the fortune to eat.
Come, try my buns.
As he spoke, MO Chengfeng handed the steamed buns he brought over to MO Ruyue, hoping that she would give him a good evaluation.
It was fine if he couldnt get othersments, but he should at least get MO Ruyuesments.
MO Ruyue looked at the little bun in MO Chengfengs big palm and felt that the little bun was a little cute.
This is too small. Are they steamed dumplings?
However, there were quite a lot of fillings inside.
She ate it bit by bit, carefully tasting the taste of the bun.
Its filled with the smell of meat. When I bite it open, the juice will flow out. MO Ruyue praised him generously.
Those who liked meat buns would definitely like to eat the meat buns made by MO Chengfeng.
However, the buns were rtively small. Eating one would not be enough.
When MO Chengfeng heard MO Ruyues answer, the clouds in his heart instantly cleared and the sun appeared.
It wasnt that his cooking wasnt delicious, but that those people didnt have the fortune to eat.
Senior Brother, try the barbecue I made.
MO Ruyue tried her best to promote the barbecue she made. The taste was extraordinary.
Then Im going to have a good taste.
MO Chengfeng unceremoniously picked up a skewer of roasted meat and started eating.
He bit the meat. It was crispy on the outside and tender on the inside. Every taste bud of his could feel the deliciousness of the barbecue, making him unable to stop.
This
MO Chengfeng was shocked speechless.
How is it? Is it not delicious?
MO Ruyue was a little worried.
Looking at the others, he felt that his cooking should be quite delicious.
Its too delicious. Whats in it? Its so fragrant, tender, and crispy He felt that he had eaten quite a lot of delicious food.
However, this was the first time he had eaten meat skewers with such a unique taste.
Just one skewer was not enough to satisfy his craving.
After eating one skewer, it made people want to eat a second skewer.
It was no wonder that somemoners woulde back again after eating once.
It was indeed delicious, which was why it was so attractive.
If it wasnt delicious, themoners probably wouldnt havee here to eat kebabs.
Chen Yuluo also ate MO Ruyues kebabs.
He didnt want to admit that the kebabs were delicious, but they were indeed delicious.
She had never eaten kebabs like this before, so she felt that it was especially delicious.
Xin Zhao also took a bite of the meat skewer, but he suddenly stopped.
This smell
It was too delicious!
Junior Sister, this meat skewer is really too delicious.
Xin Zhao wished he could bring the skewers back so that everyone in the immortal sect could eat them.
What good food do I have? Actually, I can do it too.
Chen Yuluo didnt want to hear Zhao Xin praise a strange woman.
Moreover, she was a pretty woman.
Do you really know how to do it?
Whats so difficult about that? Wasnt it just a few pieces of meat and skewered with small bamboo skewers? Its not difficult at all.
This level of difficulty was nothingpared to the difficulty of flying on a sword.
Then Im really looking forward to Little Junior Sisters cooking.
Xin Zhao was deep in thought as he turned back to look at the woman who was barbecuing.
At this moment, she was talking to another man with a smile on her face. That smile was like a blooming flower, bright and moving.
The second round of thepetition soon ended.
Other than MO Ruyue, there were a few others who also had a lot of lots.
Next, you should be more conscious. Count the number of signatures you have obtained and report it to me.
The boss signaled for the referee to speak. The whole time, he had been sitting at the side, silently watching everything.
He was quite satisfied with the second round.
MO Ruyue held a bunch of sticks in her hand and said, I wont be self-aware. Youd better find someone to count. Otherwise, Im afraid Ill overstate the number.
The boss listened to MO Ruyues words and could only choose his own people to count.
Lets see whos better.
MO Ruyue sat calmly on a chair beside the other.
She felt that she would definitely be able to enter the finals.
Even if he couldnt get first ce, he could get second ce. Third ce was not bad either.
The second and third ce were also rich, just not as rich as the first ce.
Thisdy has a total of 100 sticks.
This master has a total of eighty sticks.
This master has a total of eighty-four sticks.
Other than MO Ruyue and the other two masters, the others had already been disqualified.
Not many people tasted the meat buns made by MO Chengfeng, so naturally, they did not get the skewer.
It wasnt that the buns were not delicious, but in this generation, buns werent just a rare thing. Everyone could afford to eat them, so in this kind ofpetition, there wasnt anything special about them.
People preferred to eat delicacies that they had never eaten before.
Kuyue, youre really amazing.
MO Chengfeng gave MO Ruyue a thumbs up.
MO Ruyue nodded and pulled La MO Chengfengs sleeve.Senior Brother, keep a low profile, keep a low profile.
The main reason was that he did not want MO Chengfeng to be too high-profile and expose his identity.
Zhao Xin and Chen Yuluo were still here.
Okay, Ill cheer you on downstairs.
MO Chengfeng didnt think too much about it. He thought that MO Ruyue wanted to keep a low profile, so he restrained his emotions and calmed down.
Chen Yuluo noticed that Zhao Xin was looking at the woman from time to time. She rolled her eyes and seemed to have thought of something.
She held her stomach and said, Senior Brother, lets leave this ce quickly.
My stomach hurts a little.
Junior Sister, whats wrong?
Senior Brother, there are too many people here. Lets go somewhere less crowded.
Chen Yuluo pretended to be in pain.
She was afraid that Third Senior Brothers soul would be seduced by that woman.
That woman didnt give her a particrly good feeling.
This woman looked very simr to the woman she had met in Dongli.
Alright, then lets leave this ce quickly.
Seeing that Chen Yuluo was not feeling well, Zhao Xin had no choice but to leave with his junior sister.
Although he still wanted to eat the food that woman made.
He had never eaten such delicious skewers before.
MO Ruyue stood on the stage and watched Zhao Xin leave with Chen Yuluo. She slowly heaved a sigh of relief.
She was really afraid that her identity would be exposed.
Before he became stronger, it was best not to expose his identity. Otherwise, he would not even have the ability to protect himself.
It seemed that she had to properly learn the Neb Sword Technique from her Demon Venerable Master.
Learning the Neb Sword Technique was more practical than improving his cultivation.
Cultivation wasnt something that could be improved so easily unless the reward from the Salted Fish System could help her.
Otherwise, it would be too difficult for her to rely on herself..
Chapter 699 - 699: Blood Profits, No Losses
Chapter 699 - 699: Blood Profits, No Losses
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The third round of thepetition began. The judge for this round was the shop owner, so the dishes only needed to be approved by the shop owner.
MO Ruyue looked at the other two people who were already busy. Actually, MO Ru Yue didnt know what to do at this time. She wasnt a professional chef, so she didnt expect to enter the third round.
One of the two chefs was dealing with the fish, while the other was dealing with the pigs head.
It seemed like two tough dishes.
MO Ruyue looked at the materials behind her and hesitated.
Below the stage, MO Chengfeng looked at MO Ruyue with a folding fan in his hand and a trace of worry in his eyes.
Did Ruyue not know what she had done?
Actually, Ruyue could earn money from cooking any dish she wanted, but the money might not be as much as the first and second ce.
Damn it, I cantpare to those two guys.
MO Ruyue muttered softly. She was hesitating in front of all kinds of ingredients. She really didnt know what to choose.
Why hasnt that woman started yet?
l dont know. That woman is probably preparing to umte her ultimate move. When the timees, she will amaze everyone. Yes, that must be the case. The skewers just now made me want more.
l really hope I can eat such delicious skewers in the future.
Everyone was talking among themselves. They were very optimistic about MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue hesitated for a while before picking up the eggnt and a piece of pork.
Ill have minced meat and eggnt stew. This is the only thing she can make.
He had thought about making steak and spaghetti, but he always felt that the delicacies of China were much more delicious than those things.
She had eaten a lot of Western food, but she still felt that Chinese food was better.
Making steak and spaghetti was at most a little novel, but it might not be able to capture the appetite of others.
The minced meat and eggnt stew was rtively simple and convenient. Although it might not win, it would still leave a lingering aftertaste.
In this era, eggnts were only boiled and eaten with sauce.
At first, MO Ruyue did not understand this way of eating. It was obviously better to eat it stir-fried.
Later on, he found out that eggnts were too oily. Most people were reluctant to put oil in them.
Time is up!
The boss shouted, and the three people in thepetition stopped. l made braised mandarin fish. Please try it.
The first chef spoke confidently. He was full of confidence in his dishes.
The boss nodded and picked up his chopsticks. The color, fragrance, and shape were not bad. He picked up a little fish and put it into his mouth.
Everyone stared at their boss, anticipating his expression.
The boss closed his eyes and chewed slowly. Then, he opened his eyes and didnt make anyments.
Then, the boss went to another chef.
Im making braised pigs head meat. Please taste it.
The boss tasted it again and nodded slowly, seemingly quite satisfied.
MO Ruyue was not as nervous as before when she saw this scene.
He had thought that the dishes made by the two chefs would definitely be stunning, but in the end, he realized that it was just so-so. There was nothing special about it and it was very ordinary.
This way, she seemed to have a little chance.
The boss finally arrived in front of MO Ruyue, only to see that she only had a pot of soup.
What did you do? he asked, puzzled.
Soup?
It looked a little simr.
Minced meat and eggnt casserole. Boss, please have a taste. MO Ruyue smiled.
As she spoke, MO Ruyue opened the lid, and a fragrant aroma wafted into her nose.
The boss was puzzled for a moment. He had already thought of how greasy the minced meat eggnt pot was.
He had never seen a chef who could make eggnt delicious.
However, the girls dish was fresh, and it might bring him some surprises.
He tasted it. It was smooth in his mouth, not greasy at all, and the eggnt was smooth
It was too delicious!
It was the first time he had eaten such delicious eggnt. Moreover, it did not consume any oil. Together with the minced meat, it went very well with the rice.
Give me a bowl of rice.
The boss only wanted to eat a bowl of rice with minced meat and eggnt.
It was too appetizing.
MO Ruyue hurriedly scooped a bowl of rice for the boss. She secretly rejoiced when she saw the boss eating inrge chunks.
This was all luck.
The people below saw the boss eating so happily and swallowed their saliva. They really wanted to taste it.
There was actually someone who could make eggnt so delicious. That was amazing.
After the match, the boss nced at the people in front of him and announced,l hereby announce that the first ce winner of this cookingpetition is Minced Meat Eggnt Stew, the second ce winner is Braised
Pig Head Meat, and the third ce winner is Braised Osmanthus Fish MO Ruyue suppressed the joy in her heart and winked at MO Chengfeng.
A pot of minced meat and eggnt overshadowed the crowd.
MO Chengfeng raised his chin slightly and smiled.
He did not expect Ruyues cooking skills to be so good.
Truly amazing.
After that, it was time to give out the rewards. The boss invited the three winners into the restaurant. He still had something to say to them.
Im a businessman, so I wont beat around the bush. I want your recipes. You cant sell them to other restaurants except for your own use. If you agree, we can sign an agreement.
The boss was also a straightforward person and did not beat around the bush. He organized thispetition to find dishes.
Experts were among themon people. He hoped that through thispetition, his restaurants business would be even more prosperous. If you dont want to, I wont force you, but I wont give you the reward.
This was how business was. If there was no profit to be made, what business would he do?
l totally agree, replied MO Ruyue after some thought.
He had earned five thousand taels of silver from using the recipe.
There shouldnt be anything more profitable than this in the world, right?
The other two hesitated and did not give an answer.
They were serious chefs, so they would definitely cook for other restaurants in the future.
He couldnt fulfill the conditions that his boss had offered.
What are you two still hesitating about? The shop owner continued to ask.
Is it so difficult to consider?
Wasnt the silver he gave enough?
l cant do it. I cant give you the recipe.
Thats right. The recipe will not be passed on to others!
The two chefs didnt agree. They relied on their own dishes to make a living. If they revealed the recipe to others and couldnt go to other restaurants to cook this kind of dish in the future, wouldnt that make things difficult for them?
The shop owners face darkened, and his gaze shifted between the two of them.
Since thats the case, I cant give you the rewards youve obtained in thispetition.
He wasnt doing charity work, he was doing thispetition just to get some recipes.
Since he didnt give her the recipe, she couldnt me him.
MO Ruyue remained silent at the side. These two chefs were also stubborn. If they couldnt cook, couldnt they pass on their recipes to their sons or disciples?
The shop owner didnt say that he couldnt pass it on to his son or disciple.
Of course, this had nothing to do with her, so she didnt n to meddle in other peoples business.
As long as he could get the money, it would be fine.
MO Ruyue thought to herself.
In the end, the two chefs could only leave angrily. They were unwilling to sell their dishes, and the boss naturally would not give them the money.
MO Ruyue was the only one who signed an agreement, promising that she would not sell the recipe to anyone else.
Youngdy, Ive kept the five thousand taels of silver.
Thank you, Boss. Boss is very generous.
MO Ruyue epted the five thousand taels of silver that she should have received with a smile on her face.
Adding on the money she got from selling the ck Heart Fruit, she had quite a bit of money on hand.
However, this amount of money was not enough to buy a storage ring..
Chapter 700 - 700: Bountiful Harvest
Chapter 700 - 700: Bountiful Harvest
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Does Young Lady know any other dishes?
The owner asked curiously, wanting to dig out a few more recipes from MO Ruyues mouth.
He also wanted to keep the girl in front of him as a chef in his restaurant, but he felt that it was a little inappropriate.
How could he be willing to stay in a restaurant to be a chef at such an old age?
MO Ruyue put the five thousand taels of silver notes into her pocket, feeling rather good.
l dont have a master. I just made the dishes myself. Boss, my senior brother is still waiting for me outside. Ill take my leave first.
Mo Ruyue was ready to leave. Since she had already gotten the money, there was no need for her to stay.
Moreover, she had to return to the Demon Realm to report to her Demon Venerable Master. She really could not dy for too long.
Take care, girl.
The shop owner stood up to send them off, hoping that these recipes would bring unexpected gains to his restaurant.
Seeing how themoners liked to eat, they would definitely earn a lot of money.
MO Ruyue went outside to meet up with MO Chengfeng.
MO Chengfeng looked at the bright smile on MO Ruyues face and knew that MO Ruyue had received her reward.
Senior Brother, sorry for the long wait.
l didnt wait long. It seems that you have already received the reward? MO Chengfengs handsome face carried a gentle smile.
MO Ruyues smile made people feel veryfortable. It was bright and moving.
It seemed that he had not seen such a smile for a long time.
Senior Brother, lets go eat first, then well return to the Demon Realm.
MO Ruyue touched her wallet. It was no longer thin and t.
At least he was a little fat now.
Ill treat Senior Brother to a big meal. If Senior Brother wants to eat anything, just tell me.
He no longer had to n what to eat. He could order whatever he wanted.
She had plenty of money.
MO Chengfeng rubbed MO Ruyues head and led her outside.
Im not interested in anything else. I just want to eat the kebabs and minced meat and eggnt stew made by Junior Sister.
He had tasted the kebabs before. The taste was indeed very good. It left a lingering aftertaste, as if he had not eaten enough.
He could still taste the meat in his mind.
If only he could eat it again.
There was also minced meat and eggnt stew. Only the owner had eaten that before, so he didnt know what it tasted like.
To be able to make eggnts so delicious, this junior sister was indeed skilled.
Alright, when we return to the Devil Realm, Ill personally cook for Shixiong.
MO Ruyue never thought that MO Chengfeng would like her kebabs and eggnt stew.
He couldnt help but be curious about how much MO Chengfeng was interested in him.
Hence, she checked MO Chengfengs interest in her.
Judging from the current situation, it should be at least 30 points, right?
When she checked it, she was stunned.
MO Chengfengs feelings for her were actually 50 points, 20 more than she had imagined.
Although he didnt know what this Temptation Point was for, it was better to have more than less.
She wanted to build a good rtionship with her senior brothers. If her identity as a spy was exposed, her senior brothers would be able to talk to her.
Only for Senior Brother?
MO Chengfengs voice was very soft, but his deep eyes were filled with anticipation.
He lowered his head and looked at the woman beside him.
Senior Brother, what did you say?
MO Ruyue raised her head and her gaze met MO Chengfengs deep eyes.
She had been busy calcting her own money and hadnt heard what her senior brother had said clearly.
She was distracted and didnt hear him clearly.
Its nothing.
MO Chengfeng smiled faintly, feeling helpless in his heart as to why he would care about such a thing.
Had he changed? MO Ruyue was skeptical. Really?
Its really nothing.
MO Chengfeng responded. Since Junior Sister Ruyue did not hear him clearly, then forget it.
It was also an unimportant sentence.
The two of them set foot on the road back to the demon world. When they were tired, they stopped to rest.
Senior Brother, do you know how to ride a flying sword?
MO Ruyue rubbed her legs.
There was a sword kinesis flying technique in this world, but it was not easy to learn.
Here, it was impossible for Qi Condensation cultivators to learn the flying sword technique. Only Foundation Establishment cultivators could learn it. When one reached the Golden Core stage, it would be very powerful.
MO Ruyue was still at the Qi Cultivation Stage, so she was not qualified to learn the sword kinesis flying technique.
Mo Chengfengs nodded slightly and nced at MO Ruyue.
Yes, but I havent fully grasped it.
His sword kinesis flying technique wasnt mature enough, and his cultivation level wasnt high enough.
MO Ruyue seemed to be deep in thought. Her ck eyes darted around as if she was thinking about something.
When she returned this time, she wanted to ask her Demon Venerable Master if he had a way to learn how to ride a sword while still in the lianqi stage. Riding a horse was really tiring. His crotch was sore. In short, he was extremely tired.
She did not know how to describe the fatigue and tiredness of riding a horse.
Whats wrong? Do you want to learn?
Of course, I dont want to ride a horse anymore. Its tiring and inconvenient. MO Ruyue pursed her lips and took a deep breath.
If you want to learn, I can also teach you how to grasp the essentials. Later on, you can slowly practice and master it. Of course, the premise is that your cultivation has to enter the foundation establishment stage.
He was very happy to help Ruyue.
Thank you, Senior Brother.
MO Ruyue was grateful that MO Chengfeng was willing to help her.
After resting for a while, the two of them continued on their way.
Finally, they returned to the Demon Realm before nightfall.
Mo Ruyue didnt have time to rest. She walked towards the Demon Pce.
But he didnt see his master.
Standing outside the courtyard, MO Ruyue looked around. It was so quiet that she could even hear her own breathing.
Why was it so quiet?
Master, Im back!
MO Ruyue shouted loudly, her hands acting as a loudspeaker.
Where the hell did this Demon Venerable Master go?
She looked from the inside to the outside, and from the outside to the inside, but there was no one there.
Forget it,e back tomorrow.
He muttered to himself and prepared to leave the Demon Pce.
As soon as he turned around, he saw a tall ck figure appear in his line of sight.
M-Master
MO Ruyue stuttered and her heart skipped.
She was indeed shocked by her Demon Venerable Master. Why was this demon silent?
Youre back?
Ming Sihan nced at MO Ruyue and walked into the hall.
MO Ruyue followed Ming Sihans footsteps. Master, Ive already avenged Eldest Senior Brother.
They encountered many dangers along the way, but they were all resolved in the end.
In the end, he even took revenge.
What did you get this time?
Ming Sihan sat down on the chair and nodded slightly, his eyes fixed on MO Ruyue.
After this woman left, the Devil Pce seemed to have be much quieter.
Although it wasnt that lively in the past.
This trip has yielded a lot of rewards.
What did you get?
Xi Liang is quite big.
MO Ruyue didnt know what she had gained, but she had seen the world.
He didnt have any special gains.
He didnt expect that his Demon Venerable Master would ask him about his harvest after going out on a mission.
This wasparable to the feeling of watching a movie or reading a famous book and being asked by the teacher to write a review and a review..
Chapter 701 - 701: A Welcoming Ceremony
Chapter 701 - 701: A Weing Ceremony
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Other than these?
Ming Sihan narrowed his eyes, sending out a dangerous signal.
Mo Ruyue lowered her head and braced herself to continue.
After helping Eldest Senior Brother take revenge, I finally realized how vicious the hearts of the people in the pce are. The vicious Empress and the fatuous King. The pce may seem magnificent, but its actually made up of countless bones
She described what had happened along the way, as well as her own opinions and thoughts.
This should be what the Demon Venerable Master wanted to know.
After talking for a long time, MO Ruyue finally shut her mouth. She lowered her head and said respectfully, Master, this is what I gained. It made me understand a principle.
The hall was immersed for a while. Mo Ruyue felt a sense of oppression.
What logic?
Ming Sihan asked.
What was this woman talking about?
No matter how good the outside world is, its not as good as our Demon Realm.
MO Ruyue raised her head and chuckled.
When MO Ruyue saw her Demon Venerable Masters dark face, she hurriedly lowered her head, and the smile on her face vanished.
Did her words offend the demon?
He didnt feel that way.
Wasnt this what her Demon Venerable Master wanted her to say?
Ming Sihan was furious. What was this woman thinking?
His brain was a little strange.
He lowered his voice and slowly said, Has your cultivation not improved at all?
Do you?
MO Ruyue said uncertainly.
But she was still in the Refinement Stage.
It might not be that easy to raise her cultivation to the Foundation
Establishment Realm unless she had some good luck.
Have you used the Neb Sword Technique before? Ming Sihan picked up a cup of tea beside him and took a small sip.
Of course, the sword technique that Master taught me is very useful. With a
swoosh swoo
MO Ruyue hurriedly nodded. The Neb Swordsmanship was indeed not bad.
However, it was still much inferior to her heavenly punishment.
Of course, Heavens Wrath was a trial card, while the Neb Sword Technique would be his skill for life as long as he learned it.
Therefore, the Neb Sword Technique was still better to use.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, a trace of satisfaction shed across Ming Sihans eyes.
Go back and rest for two days. After two days, I have important things to tell you.
Ming Sihan raised his hand, and there was a hint of trickery in his dark eyes.
The people he used were all sharp des in his hands, and MO Ruyue was naturally his sharp de.
He would make good use of this sharp de.
MO Ruyue cupped her hands at the man sitting on the main seat and said,Yes, Master.
Oh right, Master, I have something very important to ask you.
She thought about it and decided to ask the man in front of her.
This man was the leader of the Demon Realm. He must know a lot of things.
Just say what it is.
Ming Sihan nodded slightly and stared at MO Ruyue.
Its like this. Is there any way to learn the sword riding technique without reaching the foundation establishment stage?
Her current cultivation level was too low. She still had a long way to go before she could reach the Foundation Establishment stage.
It would take at least three to five years, and at least ten years.
She was so poor that she didnt have the money to buy spirit pills to raise her cultivation.
Therefore, he wanted to see if there was any other way to learn the sword kinesis flying technique.
He stared at the demon with hope.
The Demon Lords long silver-white hair appeared unique in the candlelight. You want to learn sword kinesis flight now?
MO Ruyue nodded hurriedly. Yes.
Do you know that learning the Sword Kinesis Flight Technique is going against the heavens?
l know. Im asking Master, is there any way you can help me?
She blinked.
Dont think about taking shortcuts. Take it step by step.
This woman had just learned how to walk and she already wanted to fly?
Ming Sihans pale and handsome face was stern.
Although they were demonic cultivators, they were the same as immortal cultivators. They absolutely could not take shortcuts and had to build a good foundation.
Master, please calm down. I know what to do.
MO Ruyue quickly apologized.
Judging from the Demon Lords expression, there should be no other way to learn the sword kinesis flying technique in advance.
She also wanted to ck off and didnt want to go out to ride a horse.
The rider is tired, the horse is even more tired.
It would be great if he could learn the sword kinesis flying technique.
MO Ruyue thought to herself.
Master and disciple will go down first.
Go ahead.
Ming Sihan watched MO Ruyue leave without batting an eyelid. With a wave of his sleeve, the entire pce fell into darkness.
MO Ruyue pped her hands as she walked out of the Devil Pce, her face full of depression.
She had forgotten to look at the Demon Venerable Masters feelings for her.
However, after not being in the Demon Realm for so many days, the Demon Lords interest in her should not have increased.
Perhaps because she was not familiar with the face, her heart rate had decreased.
She was not in a hurry toplete the mission. She just wanted to get the reward.
The previous missions were quite easy toplete, but the current mission made her unable to start.
Sighing, MO Ruyue walked forward.
When she returned to her territory, she immediately saw Li Zeyan.
Other than Li Zeyan, there was also Sixth Senior Brother Qi Shaoyu.
The two of them waited outside.
When MO Ruyue appeared, Li Zeyan and Qi Shaoyu had smiles on their faces. It was obvious that they weed MO Ruyues return.
Sister Ruyue, youre finally back. Ive made you delicious food.
Li Zeyan rushed to MO Ruyues side before Qi Shaoyu and grabbed her arm.
It was as if he was telling Oj Shaoyu that MO Ruyue was closer to him.
Qi Shaoyu was stunned. He looked at this scene silently and frowned.
This kid didnt do it on purpose, right?
He didnt take it to heart and just thought that Li Zeyan had subconsciously gotten ahead of him.
How did you know I wasing back today? MO Ruyue asked curiously.
Did these guys pay so much attention to her?
Qi Shaoyu followed MO Ruyue into the courtyard.
From the moment you and Eldest Senior Brother entered the Devil World, the news spread.
Its hard not to know.
After all, this was the first time the Saintess had gone out on a mission, so everyone naturally paid more attention to her.
Thats right. I know that youre going to the Demon Pce first, Sister Ruyue. I took advantage of this time to cook a meal for you.
Li Zeyan was overjoyed.
Sister Ruyue had finally returned.
Sister Ruyue must have suffered a lot along the way, right?
Sister Ruyue seemed to have lost a little weight.
The short separation made him very uneasy.
He was brought to the Demon Realm by Sister Ruyue and had the best rtionship with her.
After spending so much time with Sister Ruyue, he had unknowingly treated her as his own family.
He also developed a sense of dependence on MO Ruyue.
Upon hearing their conversation, MO Ruyues eyes shed with understanding.
She thought that these two people had predicted that she would return to the Demon Realm today.
Why are there only the two of you? Where is Fifth Senior Brother?
MO Ruyue asked curiously.
She sat on the bench and nced at the dishes on the table. Although there was no meat, they looked pretty good.
It should be delicious too.
Fifth Senior Brother and Little Junior Sister went on a mission.
Them?
MO Ruyue thought of Xia Zhixing and Shen Yunyan and was slightly stunned.
Even though Shen Yunyan was not on good terms with him, he was still quite strong.
With the two of them working together, they should be able toplete the mission, right?
Chapter 702 - 702: A melodramatic love drama
Chapter 702 - 702: A melodramatic love drama
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Thats right. The two of them were sent out by the Demon Venerable to find the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
How long have you been out?
MO Ruyue was holding a pair of chopsticks in her hand, her fair fingers caressing one end of the chopsticks.
The Heaven-cleaving Sword, wasnt it the Heaven-cleaving Sword that Lan Qi wanted?
Theres a clue about this sword?
Did the Demon Lord want it?
MO Ruyue secretly guessed.
Lan Qi had told her to find the Heaven-cleaving Sword and then take her out of the Demon Realm.
She could not help but sneer in her heart. Lan Qis idea was pretty good. The Heaven-cleaving Sword was about the same level as the Ghost Thought. It would be a waste to give such a powerful sword to Lan Qi.
Perhaps, Lan Qi wanted to use the Heaven-cleaving Sword to borrow flowers and present Buddha to his master to gain his masters favor.
If that was really the case, it could only be said that Lan Qi was scheming.
Qi Shaoyu thought for a while and replied, It should have been three or four days.
Do you know any clues about the Heaven-cleaving Sword? l really dont know about this, but the Demon Lord should know.
Alright, I got it.
MO Ruyue nodded and said to Qi Shaoyu,Sit down and eat together. Try
Brother Zeyans cooking. Its really delicious.
Li Zeyan finally heard MO Ruyue mention his name, and a satisfied smile appeared on his face.
Previously, when Sister Ruyue was talking to Qi Shaoyu, he couldnt even get a word in.
He sat at the side and quietly listened to the two of them talk.
Qi Shaoyu sat down and picked up his chopsticks. He looked at the dishes on the table and didnt seem to like them.
Li Zeyan nced at Qi Shaoyu and saw that he was still not eating. His eyes narrowed and a harmless smile appeared on his face.Brother, why arent you eating? Do you think it doesnt taste good?
The food that he had painstakingly prepared was not for Qi Shaoyu to eat.
This guy didnt even touch his chopsticks when he was cooking. Was he looking down on his cooking?
If he didnt eat, he would leave.
Of course, Li Zeyan wouldnt say this out loud.
MO Ruyue looked up at Qi Shaoyu and hurriedly said,Try it. Zeyans cooking is really good.
Okay, let me try it.
Qi Shaoyu picked up his chopsticks and started eating.
When Li Zeyan saw Qi Shaoyu eat, he immediately asked, Brother, hows my cooking?
Not bad.
He made a fair evaluation. After all, he had eaten something better than this before.
It was just so-so.
The smile on Li Zeyans face froze, but he did not get angry. He just smiled innocently and asked,Brother, do you know how to cook?
Not bad means average, right?
l, wont.
Qi Shaoyu felt that this young man in front of him was up to no good.
It looked simple and harmless, but it was not.
Li Zeyan sighed and said helplessly,I thought your cooking skills were not bad. 1 thought it would be great if 1 could learn from you.
She didnt know how to cook, but she actually thought that his cooking was average!
He really hated this kind of person.
How could Qi Shaoyu not hear the hidden meaning in Li Zeyans words? His face darkened.
Mo Ruyue seemed to have sensed the invisible mes of war and smoke. She said,Nothing happened in the Heavenly Demon Realm these days, right?
With the Demon Venerable around, those who cant stand the Demon Realm can only endure it.
The Demon Venerables strength was unfathomable. Not many people from those immortal sects could defeat the Demon Venerable.
Then, Qi Shaoyu said, A few days ago, Third Senior Brother asked me to tell you to be careful when you go out on missions. Someone has their eyes on
you.
l know. I will be careful.
MO Ruyue replied. She was now the Saintess. Anyone outside, any immortal sect or organization couldy their hands on her.
The danger was simply impossible to guard against.
Even some people in the demon world might think of a way to get rid of her.
As long as she died, the position of Saintess would be vacant, and a new Saintess would definitely be chosen to rece her.
He just had to be wary of the female fiendish cultivator because it was useless for the male fiendish cultivator to kill her.
However, when she thought about how Third Senior Brother, that cold man, still cared about her, her heart suddenly felt warm.
His days in the Demon Realm were getting more and more promising.
At night, MO Ruyuey on the bed with her eyes closed, thinking about other things.
Didnt Lan Qi want the Heaven-cleaving Sword? She would not let Lan Qi get it.
Speaking of which, the Heaven-cleaving Sword was a sword that every immortal sect wanted to obtain. It could be used as a treasure of the sect.
If he snatched such a good thing and gave it to the Demon Venerable, he would definitely force it on the immortal sect.
The next morning, MO Chengfeng appeared in her courtyard.
As soon as he stepped out, he saw MO Chengfeng.
MO Ruvue held back her vawn and rubbed her eves.Senior Brother, whats the matter?
MO Chengfeng was dressed in a dark green robe with silver threads at the cuffs. He was wearing a white undergarment with a white cor.
His ck hair was tied up with a silver crown, and he held the silver bone fracture fan in his hand.
The silver bone fracture fan was this mans weapon.
The scene of him hitting someone with a fan appeared in MO Ruyue i s mind. His movements were elegant and dashing.
Did Junior Sister forget to invite Senior Brother for a meal?
Senior Brother was afraid that Junior Sister had forgotten the
MO Chengfeng had a casual smile on his face, and his deep eyes were filled with anticipation.
He really couldnt forget Junior Sister Ruyues craftsmanship.
l wont forget. How could I forget?
MO Ruyue smiled awkwardly.
To be honest, if MO Chengfeng had not speciallye over to remind her, she would have really forgotten.
She had originally thought that she would find the Demon Venerable today to see if there were any clues about the Heaven-cleaving Sword. She was prepared to find the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
However, it seemed that this matter could only be put aside for now.
Is that so?
Nio Chengfeng raised his eyebrows. He did not believe Ruyues words.
Ruyue must have forgotten about it long ago.
However, he had to eat Ruyues cooking today even if he had to be thick-skinned.
Of course, Ill go out to the demon world canteen to buy cooking materials.
As she spoke, MO Ruyue picked up the bamboo basket beside her and prepared to leave.
In the end, he said to Li Zeyan who was cleaning the yard,Zeyan, 1 went to the cafeteria to buy groceries. Wait for me toe back.
Alright, Sister Ruyue.
Li Zeyan responded with a broom in his hand.
His childish face tensed up. Yesterday it was Sixth Brother, today it was Eldest Brother.
Sister Ruyue was really popr in the Demon Realm.
Eldest senior brother, this is
Yes, I know. llheres no need to exin.Mo Chengteng stopped MO Ruyue. He already knew about Li Zeyans existence.
He basically knew everything that happened in the Demon Realm.
Seeing that MO Chengfeng knew who Li Zeyan was, MO Ruyue did not say anything more. She only said,Senior brother, wait for me here.
No need. Ill go to the cafeteria with you.
That, that, that,
MO Ruyue nodded in agreement.
Let me take the bamboo basket.
MO Chengfeng took the bamboo basket and said to the stunned MO
Ruyue,Lets go
Ah, oh, okay.
MO Ruyue rubbed her chin. Why did she feel a little strange?
It was a little like a boyfriend apanying his girlfriend out to buy groceries.
Although she had never been in a rtionship, she had watched a lot of melodramatic love dramas.
He hoped that he was thinking too much.
MO Ruyue restrained her messy thoughts and quickly followed MO Chengfeng.
Li Zeyan stood rooted to the ground, staring nkly at MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng as they left the courtyard..
Chapter 703 - 703: Famous Dish
Chapter 703 - 703: Famous Dish
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng went to the canteen together.
On the way, the patrolling Devil World disciples bowed respectfully to MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng.
Yesterday, did the Demon Lord say anything to you? MO Chengfeng asked casually.
His words broke the silence between the two of them.
MO Ruyue was still worried about finding a topic to talk about, but MO Chengfeng spoke first.
Nothing much, she replied. He just told me to rest well. I still have a mission to do in two days.
She did not know what the mission was. She was just a brick in the Demon Lords hand. She could carry it wherever she needed it.
Before, it was said that the methods of the devil were cruel and heartless, but 1 think that was just a rumor.
At that time, she was especially afraid of the Demon Venerable.
There was a saying that was really right. One should not easily understand a person from the mouth of others.
Even the people in the Demon Realm thought that the Demon Venerable was a cold and heartless person.
Although the Demon Lord was not easy to get along with, he was not as terrifying as the rumors said.
MO Chengfeng nodded slightly and looked at the mountain peak in the distance.This isnt all bad. At the very least, it will make everyone revere the
Demon Venerable and not dare to act rashly.
Moreover, the Demon Lord was indeed cruel and cold in certain matters.
Especially when it came to dealing with traitors.
Yes, I know. There are always two sides to things. Its not ck and white. MO Ruyue nodded to show her understanding.
Ruyue, Im afraid your days in the future wont be easy. The Saintess is actually a killing weapon in the hands of the Demon Lord. I shouldnt have let you sign up to make up the numbers. l
He regretted letting MO Ruyue sign up to make up the numbers.
Half of the credit for Ruyue bing the Saintess was due to him.
However, his original intention was not to let Ru Yue be the Saintess.
MO Ruyue replied, I know. Im doing my job ording to my position. I dont me the Demon Lord or Senior Brother. It was my own choice to be the
Saintess. At least, Im enjoying the feeling of being valued by others now.
He was used in the immortal sect, and he was still used in the demon world.
However, at least in the Demon Realm, he would receive good treatment.
She was like a worker who worked hard for her boss. She would work for whoever gave her the best benefits.
Following the Demon Venerable, her strength would definitely slowly be stronger.
Its good that you think that way.
MO Chengfeng admired MO Ruyues attitude.
If Ruyue was a sharp de in the Demon Lords hand, wasnt he too?
He should be happy that he could be used by the Demon Venerable.
It meant that he was a useful person.
As they spoke, the two of them had already arrived outside the canteen.
When the canteen steward saw MO Chengfeng and MO Ruyue, he hurriedly stood up to wee them.
In the past, he would never treat MO Ruyue like this.
Now that MO Ruyue had be the Saintess, she was the favorite of the
Demon Lord.
They naturally had to curry favor with him.
People were always like this, they liked to climb up thedder. Senior Brother MO, Saintess, Im sorry for not weing you.
What would you like to eat?
The manager asked with a smile, his face glowing red.
Mo Ruyue immediately waved her hand. She really couldnt eat the food here.
She had been in the demon world for so long, but she had only eaten a handful of things in the canteen.
No need.
MO Chengfeng agreed. He often came here to eat, and he did feel that the food here was not delicious.
However, the others seemed to like it very much.
At one point, she felt that her taste was abnormal.
Manager, we are here to buy ingredients. Do you have fresh pork belly, pork, beef
Since she was here, she might as well buy some.
In the past, he did not have much money and did not dare to spend it casually.
Now that she had more money, she finally did not have to be careful. Yes, yes, yes. We can have as many saintesses as we want. The stewards face was filled with joy as he repeatedly responded.
It was rare to see the Saintess.
MO Ruyue bought some ingredients and spent fifty taels.
To be honest, fifty taels was not cheap. It was almost a months sry.
Fortunately, she had earned money from other sources, so she did notck fifty taels of silver.
After returning home, MO Ruyue began to cook. She skewered the fat and lean mutton together, as well as beef and pork belly.
Other than the skewers, she also made a few other dishes that she was good at.
Otherwise, two would be too monotonous.
He took a whiff, and the fragrance assailed his nostrils.
Li Zeyan was helping out in the kitchen. When he saw MO Ruyue cutting the vegetables, he couldnt help but ask,Sister Ruyue, I didnt expect you to know how to cook.
MO Ruyue was cutting vegetables. Listening to Li Zeyans words, he seemed to be shocked that she knew how to cook.
The difficult ones wont be difficult. The simple ones will still be a little difficult.
Mo Ruyue ced the cut ingredients aside and said to Li Zeyan, Turn up the fire. Im going to start cooking.
Alright.
Li Zeyan immediately added a few sticks of firewood to the stove. With a crackling sound, the mes suddenly became brighter.
The light of the fire reflected Li Zeyans tender face. His dark eyes stared at the busy figure and never left.
Junior Sister Ruyue, what can I do to help?
MO Chengfeng walked in from outside. His gaze lingered on Li Zeyan for a moment before finally falling on MO Ruyue.
He hoped that he could be of some help.
MO Ruyue shot a nce at MO Chengfeng and did not stand on ceremony. Shemanded,Help me carry these things to the courtyard. Im going to prepare to cook.
She pointed at the barbecue rack and condiments at the side, It was better to barbecue outdoors.
Barbecuing in the room was a little suffocating.
Alright.
MO Chengfeng ced the fan in his hand into his storage ring and helped carry the things out.
Li Zeyan turned his head and watched MO Chengfeng leave without batting an eyelid.
Sister Ruyue, leave this to me.
Its fine. In any case, Shixiong has nothing to do.
MO Ruyue carried the dishes and walked out. Dont light the fire. Lets go out and eat.
Alright.
Li Zeyan replied, got up, and walked out.
Qi Shaoyu smelled the fragrance and came over. From afar, he saw MO Chengfeng in MO Ruyues courtyard.
He stopped and pondered for a moment before continuing to walk forward.
Looks like I came at the right time.
Qi Shaoyu was dressed in ake blue robe. His nted eyebrows pierced through his temples, and two strands of hair fell from his forehead, looking slightly elegant.
A faint smile appeared in her bright eyes.
He stood at the door, and the sunlight shone on him.
His entire body seemed to be ted with ayer of golden light, with a hint of haziness.
Sixth Senior Brother, you came at the right time. 1 made some food. Do you want to eat some?
MO Ruyue shouted.
Since they were already here, they couldnt chase them out, right?
Coincidentally, they had prepared quite a lot of food, so it was not a big deal to have Qi Shaoyu around.
Nio Chengfengs gaze alsonded on Qi Shaoyu. His eyes moved as he sized up the man.
She remembered that Qi Shaoyu and Ruyue didnt have a good rtionship at first, but now, they seemed to be on good terms. Then I wont stand on ceremony.
Qi Shaoyu smiled as he walked into the courtyard.
He had been here many times, so he was familiar with the ce.
Senior Brother MO, youre here too?
Qi Shaoyu smiled and greeted her.
It was very strange. Eldest Senior Brother had nevere to Ruyues ce before. This time, after Ruyue and Eldest Senior Brother went out for a trip, he clearly felt that their rtionship seemed to have be better.
What happened to them outside?
Chapter 704 - 704: An Unexpected Joy
Chapter 704 - 704: An Unexpected Joy
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Chengfeng nodded slightly. His eyes were filled with a smile. It was obvious that he was in a good mood.
Ruyue said that she wanted to treat me to a meal, so I naturally had to appear here.
Junior Brother, you havent eaten yet, right?
His meaning was obvious. This meal was specially prepared for him by Junior Sister Ruyue.
If it werent for him, Qi Shaoyu wouldnt have had the chance to eat such delicious food.
Moreover, they were all personally made by Ruyue.
Qi Shaoyu listened to MO Chengfengs words and didnt know if his senior brother was saying this intentionally or unintentionally.
He could only smile and say, It seems that its all thanks to Senior Brother.
Sit down and eat first. Ill make barbecue for you.
MO Ruyue skillfully ced the skewers on the wire mesh. She brushed ayer of oil on the skewers with a brush, rolled the skewers, and added seasoning. The skewers in her hands started to sizzle.
The aroma of roasted meat spread throughout the yard. The patrolling disciples who passed by couldnt help but stop in their tracks.
It smells so good. Whats that smell?
l dont know!
Lets go, lets go. Time to patrol.
Everyone left reluctantly, feeling their stomachs growling.
MO Chengfeng stood up and walked to MO Ruyues side. He suggested,Ruyue, let me try it too.
It looked very interesting.
MO Ruyue took the skewers away and moved away. Alright, you do it.
He was really a little tired from roasting.
It looked easy, but there were still some difficulties.
Shall I send some of these roasted meat to the Demon Lord?
Mo Ruyue thought of her Demon Venerable Master. If there was something good, she would think of her Master immediately. She wanted to see how filial she was.
Nowadays, there were not many disciples who were as filial as her.
He couldnt find it even withnterns.
The Demon Lord probably doesnt like to eat these things, right?
Qi Shaoyu said thoughtfully.
Although the food was very fragrant, would the Demon Lord really eat it?
MO Ruyue hesitated for a moment, then nimbly put the skewers on a te. I Il just send them to the Demon Lord. Its his choice whether to eat them or
not.
It didnt matter if he ate it or not. It wasnt anything valuable anyway.
The main reason was that he wanted to express his gratitude to the Demon Venerable.
She didnt know how many heart points she had. She still had to rely onpleting the mission to obtain the reward.
There was a time limit to the Heavens Retribution Experience Card. If her Heavens Retribution Experience Card failed one day, she would lose a skill to protect herself.
If he wanted to develop other skills, he had to do missions.
After saying that, MO Ruyue turned around and said to Li Zeyan,Brother
Zeyan, you and your two senior brothers wait for me here.
Li Zeyan nodded obediently. Sister Ruyue, I understand. Dont worry and go.
After watching MO Ruyue leave, the atmosphere in the courtyard suddenly became a little ufortable.
MO Chengfeng was grilling skewers and asked calmly, Sixth Junior Brother, do you oftene here to look for Junior Sister Ruyue?
Yeah, I have nothing to do anyway.
Qi Shaoyu smiled and responded calmly.
She didnt know why MO Chengfeng asked this question.
l remember that Sixth Junior Brother didnt like Junior Sister Ruyue before.
Senior Brother also said that that was before.
Qi Shaoyu replied with a fake smile.
Li Zeyan silently listened to the two of them exchange words. He couldnt help but sigh in his heart. In fact, these two people were only brothers on the surface.
Nio Chengfeng did not say anything else. He continued to roast the meat skewers and waited for MO Ruyue to return.
Qi Shaoyu also shut his mouth and sipped his tea.
Since Ruyue was not back, he could not eat.
On the other side, MO Ruyue had arrived at the Demon Pce. Fortunately, it wasnt too far away. Otherwise, the skewers in her hands would have gone cold.
How could a cold kebab be as delicious as a hot kebab?
Master, are you there?
Master, your disciple is here to see you.
MO Ruyue came to the main hall, which was rather deserted.
Unable to find the demon, her gaze fell on the demons chair.
The chair was made of pure gold and looked very luxurious.
It would be great if she could sit in this position in the future.
He took two steps forward and saw a golden chair.
This golden throne was even stronger than the dragon throne.
The emperor of the human world was only in charge of one country. On this continent, there were many countries and many emperors.
The Demon Lord of the Demon World was in charge of the entire Demon World. There was only one Demon Lord in the entire Demon World.
Just thinking about it made one know who had more power and who was more powerful.
She didnt dare to go any closer. She was still a noob, and she couldnt let the Demon Lord see her ambition.
Otherwise, what would happen if the demon sacrificed her to the heavens?
Master!
MO Ruyue went around to the side hall.
There was no one in the side hall. It was so quiet that even the sound of the breeze could be heard.
What is it?
A quiet voice rang out in the main hall.
Upon hearing that, MO Ruyue hurried back to the main hall.
MO Ruyue hurriedly lowered her head when she saw the silver-white hair. Fortunately, she was not sitting on the golden throne just now. Otherwise, she would have been caught red-handed by the Demon Venerable.
It was true that one could never be too careful.
Master, I made some skewers to show my respect to you. I hope you dont mind and can try them.
MO Ruyues pale and tender face was smiling.
She held the skewer in her hand and walked towards the Demon Lord step by step.
The closer she got, the colder she could feel the mans body.
He stopped at a safe distance and whispered,Master, this disciple personally made this.
Ming Sihan nced at the thing in MO Ruyues hand. It looked strange and he didnt know what it was.
l dont like to eat these messy things!
MO Ruyue raised her head and met the Demon Lords gaze. She was stunned for a moment before hesitantly asking, Then what does Master like to eat?
Taking advantage of the gap between the questions, he quickly checked the Demon Lords interest in him.
He looked at his heart rate and saw that it was ten!
This was a pleasant surprise.
She must have done a good job in the mission, so she received the Demon Lords affirmation and love.
Thinking of this, MO Ruyue was secretly delighted.
In the following time, she would definitely work harder toplete the missions issued by the Demon Venerable and make him happy.
She would strive toplete the mission given to her by the Salted Fish System as soon as possible.
l dont like to eat anything.
Alright, then this disciple will leave this skewer here. Master can try it. This disciple will take his leave first.
MO Ruyue lowered her head and ced the te on the table.
After achieving her goal, it was time for her to leave this ce.
Under Ming Sihans gaze, MO Ruyue left the main hall.
The originally quiet pce was filled with a strange fragrance.
It wasnt the fragrance of flowers.
It was the fragrance of food.
His deep dark red eyesnded on the skewers. He hesitated for a long time before picking up a skewer to try.
It definitely wasnt much.
When he bit it, he was stunned.
This smell
It seemed a little delicious!
Ming Sihan finished the skewer, but he still wanted more. What exactly was it? Why was it so memorable?
Previously, he was determined not to eat, but now, he could not control himself.
The p in the face came too quickly!
Ming Sihan stared at the food on the te and felt conflicted.
How could a dignified Demon Realm Demon Lord eat these things?
Put down the kebab in my hand, the taste of the kebab lingered in my nose. Therefore, Ming Sihan decided to try it. Maybe it wouldnt taste good after the second skewer.
In the end, the skewers on the te were all gone, leaving only a few bamboo sticks.
Not bad.
Ming Sihan muttered to himself, as if he still wanted more..
Chapter 705 - 705: New Mission
Chapter 705 - 705: New Mission
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue returned to the courtyard, which was unusually quiet.
Sister Ruyue!
Li Zeyan raised his head and saw MO Ruyue returning. His clear eyes were filled with excitement.
He was finally back.
MO Chengfeng and Qi Shaoyu both looked at the door and saw MO Ruyue walking in.
The two of them smiled.
MO Ruyue returned to the table and looked at the untouched dishes. She couldnt help but ask, Why havent you moved your chopsticks yet?
If he didnt move his chopsticks, the food would get cold.
I want to eat with Sister Ruyue.
Li Zeyans stomach was already growling. Seeing the delicious food in front of him, he could not move. This was a test of a persons willpower.
Hearing Li Zeyan!s words, MO Ruyue seemed to be quite sensible.
Eldest Senior Brother, Sixth Senior Brother, you guys should hurry up and eat. The food wont taste good if it gets cold.
MO Ruyue hurriedly called for them toe over and eat.
MO Chengfeng and Qi Shaoyu then sat down to eat together. They didnt talk to each other, nor did they look at each other.
Their gazes were almost all on MO Ruyue.
Feeling a little embarrassed by their stares, MO Ruyue picked up the skewers and said,Why are you all looking at me? Lets eat. Eldest Senior Brother, didnt you say that you like to eat minced meat and eggnt stew? This is it.
Just open the lid.
Could it be that just by looking at her, he would be satisfied?
No one knew what these people were thinking.
MO Chengfeng retracted his gaze and opened the lid.
A hot gas came out from inside, carrying the fragrance of eggnt.
It smells so good.
MO Chengfeng smelled the fragrance and his spirits were lifted.
Yeah.
MO Ruyue was in a good mood. Minced meat and eggnt stew was one of the few dishes she knew how to cook.
He only knew how to do a little, but nothing else.
Thank you, Ruyue, for making me minced meat and eggnt stew.
MO Chengfeng slowly opened his mouth to speak.
She wanted to let Li Zeyan and Qi Shaoyu know that the two of them were able to eat Ruyues cooking because of her.
Li Zeyan remained silent.
Although this man was telling the truth, was there a need to bring it out alone?
How could he not understand what she meant?
Qi Shaoyu paused and looked up at MO Chengfeng. His expression was calm, but underneath this calmness was another kind of mentality.
Was MO Chengfeng showing off?
I promised to treat Senior Brother to a meal. Senior Brother likes to eat minced meat and eggnt stew, so Ill make it for Senior Brother personally. It wasnt like she would do whatever MO Chengfeng said.
What she had done was merely because MO Chengfeng had helped her earlier.
If it wasnt for MO Chengfeng, she might have be a sucker.
How enviable. When will Junior Sister Ruyue be able to cook delicious food for Sixth Senior Brother?
Qi Shaoyu looked at MO Ruyue expectantly.
If Ruyue could cook delicious food for Eldest Senior Brother, she should cook delicious food for him too, right?
The delicious dishes were not the main point. The main point was who Ruyue was cooking the delicious dishes for.
MO Ruyue was eating minced meat. When she heard Qi Shaoyus words, her expression changed and she smiled.lts rare for me to have time to cook. I usually have to rest and do missions.
She wasnt a little chef.
She didnt cook for others every day. It was okay to cook delicious food asionally when she was in a leisurely mood.
She was really afraid that she would be treated as a little chef.
She was the Holy Maiden. If it wasnt for the fact that she couldnt eat the food in the canteen, she wouldnt have bothered to give special treatment!
Sometimes, when she was toozy, she could go without eating for an entire day.
If Sixth Senior Brother wants to eat, you can go to a restaurant. The food there is also quite good.
MO Ruyue rejected him and pointed out a clear path for Qi Shaoyu.
If he wanted to eat, he could go out to eat.
Although Qi Shaoyu was her Senior Brother, she didnt have to follow him.
The corners of MO Chengfengs mouth curled up into an undetectable arc.
He chimed in, Junior Sister Ruyue is now the Saintess of the Demon World. She has a heavy responsibility on her shoulders. How can she have so much time to cook? Junior Brother, please understand Junior Sister Ruyue.
Qi Shaoyu gripped his chopsticks tightly. MO Chengfengs words made him seem inconsiderate.
What had happened these days? Ruyue and MO Chengfengs rtionship had changed too much.
Shixiong is right. Shidi didnt think it through.Qi Shaoyu forced a smile.
Although the food was delicious, Qi Shaoyu didnt enjoy it.
After the meal, MO Chengfeng prepared to leave.
Ruyue, Ill go and get busy first. If theres anything, feel free to look for Eldest Senior Brother. Eldest Senior Brother will definitely help you.
The smile in MO Chengfengs eyes did not diminish.
He was very happy to have dinner with Ruyue today.
The food was prepared by Ruyue for him alone.
He was satisfied.
Yes, thank you, senior brother.
MO Ruyue waved at MO Chengfeng and watched him leave.
When MO Chengfeng left, he nced at Qi Shaoyu and revealed a meaningful smile.
Soon, there were only three people left in the courtyard. Li Zeyan looked at the leftover dishes on the table and stood up.lll clean up the dishes.
Zeyan, youve worked hard.
MO Ruyue was still thinking about what to do with the leftover dishes on the table when she heard Li Zeyan say that he would clean it up himself.
That would be great.
Because she was toozy to clean up the dishes, especially washing them.
Everyone had their own chores that they didnt like to do. MO Ruyue didnt like to wash dishes.
When he was alone, he would try to use one less bowl as much as possible.
Who would like to wash dishes?
Senior Brother, is there anything else?
MO Ruyue sat on the swing in the courtyard and prepared to have a good rest. Tomorrow, she would go and find the Demon Lord.
She wanted to see what new mission the demon lord was going to assign her.
If Qi Shaoyu didnt leave, he couldnt go back to his room to sleep. Ruyue, did something happen between you and Eldest Senior Brother?
The rtionship between the two of them was a little too good.
It wasnt like this in the past.
Qi Shaoyu thought to himself.
He wanted to figure out something.
MO Ruyue swung her legs, one in front and one behind.
Hearing Qi Shaoyus inexplicable words, MO Ruyue frowned slightly. What can happen between me and Eldest Senior Brother?
Was this guy thinking too much? What happened between her and Eldest Senior Brother?
The two of them were innocent.
Qi Shaoyu lowered his head and looked at the woman in front of him. He felt that there was some distance between them.
The two of you seem to be more intimate than before. In the past, you treated Senior Brother MO and Senior Brother MO treated you differently.
Qi Shaoyus heart sank at the thought of this.
When did their rtionship be so good?
MO Ruyue did not deny it. She pondered for a while and said, Ive gained quite a lot after going out with Eldest Senior Brother this time. Ive learned more about Eldest Senior Brother, so naturally, Im closer to him.
This was a normal phenomenon.
Knowing about Eldest Senior Brothers past, she actually felt sorry for him.
He lost his mother at a young age. His mother was killed by a bad woman. His father did nothing..
In the past, Eldest Brother was a quiet person and rarely smiled.
After taking revenge, Eldest Brother was no longer as quiet as before. There was a smile on his face.
All of this was a change, a good omen..
Chapter 706 - 706: Rich Man
Chapter 706 - 706: Rich Man
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Qi Shaoyu seemed to understand something.
Mo Ruyue raised her head and her beautiful eyes met Qi Shaoyus. She raised her eyebrows and said, Senior Brother, you seem to be very concerned about the matter between me and Eldest Senior Brother?
Did he think that she had an affair with Eldest Senior Brother?
Although Eldest Senior Brother was good in all aspects, she did not have any romantic feelings for him.
It was just an ordinary rtionship between senior and junior siblings.
Eldest Senior Brother treated her the same way.
Qi Shaoyu indeed thought so.
After a moment of silence, he said, Eldest Senior Brother has changed a lot.
He was not paying attention to Eldest Senior Brother, but MO Ruyue.
However, he would not say these words out loud.
Sixth Senior Brother, do you have a good rtionship with Eldest Senior Brother?
MO Ruyue asked curiously.
To be honest, ever since she came to the Demon Realm, she had been keeping a low profile and did not deliberately pay attention to the rtionship between her senior brothers.
His senior brothers rarely gathered together.
At that time, she only wanted to be picked up by Xuanling Immortal Sect as soon as possible.
Mo Ruyue felt that the rtionship between her Senior Brothers was not harmonious.
Of course, there was no deep hatred between them. Their rtionship was just
rtively shallow.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Qi Shaoyus face darkened. How should he answer Ruyues question?
After waiting for a long time without getting an answer from Qi Shaoyu, MO Ruyue finally understood.
The rtionship between the senior brothers was indeed not as harmonious as it seemed.
Its not too good, but its not too bad either. Were all subordinates of the Demon Venerable. Its enough to work for the Demon Venerable together. Theres no need for anything else.
Qi Shaoyu said.
Thats true.
Sometimes, too many emotional shackles were a burden.
No matter what kind of feelings it was, it was the same for all of them.
Ruyue, if you have any missions to do, you can look for me. Its more convenient for me toe here.
Qi Shaoyu said with anticipation.
He could help Ruyue as long as she needed his help.
Alright, thank you, Senior Brother.
MO Ruyue smiled and thanked him.
Qi Shaoyu stayed in the courtyard for a while before he was quickly invited away by the two disciples of the Demon Realm.
With no one around, MO Ruyue could finally lie down and rest.
Zeyan. she shouted.
Soon, Li Zeyan appeared in front of MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue opened her mouth. Just as she was about to say that she was going to sleep in her room, she noticed that Li Zeyans clothes were a little too small.
She touched her chin. Li Zeyans clothes seemed a little too small.
He hadnt noticed it before.
Sister Ruyue, whats the matter? Have you finished your work?
l just finished.
Actually, she had already finished her work and was only eavesdropping on Oj Shaoyu and MO Ruyues conversation in the kitchen. Come with me to the Demon Realm. MO Ruyue yawned.
Leave the Demon Realm? Where are we going?
Li Zeyan asked with a puzzled expression.
Why did Sister Ruyue bring him out of the Demon Realm at this time? Your clothes seem a little too small. Ill take you to buy clothes.
Theres no need. I think its okay.
Li Zeyan rejected him subconsciously.
This woman actually wanted to buy new clothes for herself!
Was there really such a good person in the world?
You can wear it in this weather, but how are you going to wear it when it gets cold?
Mo Ruyue questioned.
As she spoke, she pulled Li Zeyan out.
Li Zeyan had no choice but to keep up with MO Ruyue.
But doesnt it take a long time to buy clothes from here?
We can choose the nearest market. You dont have to pay for it. Just follow me.
Oh.
Li Zeyan followed behind MO Ruyue. He did not expect this woman to actually want to buy him clothes.
It would be a lie to say that she was not touched.
No one had ever bought him new clothes in his life.
MO Ruyue knew the market closest to the Devil Realm.
The markets here were generally for the business of the mo territories.
The people of the Demon Realm were richer, and these businessmen liked the people of the Demon Realm the most.
Therefore, although this ce was small, it was surrounded by all kinds of vendors.
Go and take a look yourself. Ill help you pay for the clothes!
MO Ruyue nned to go to the other stalls to see if there was anything she needed to buy.
She was no longer as poor as she used to be. She had some money.
But
Li Zeyan hesitated.
Are you afraid to go alone?
MO Ruyue seemed to have guessed something and smiled.
This child must have never gone out to buy clothes for herself, so she was afraid to buy clothes for herself.
Li Zeyan mumbled a few times before nodding.
He was a little embarrassed.
Ill go with you.
MO Ruyue had no choice but to apany Li Zeyan to choose clothes.
When Li Zeyan heard this, he immediately beamed with joy.
Thank you, Sister Ruyue.
Lets go. Dont be silly.
MO Ruyue shook her head helplessly.
Li Zeyan followed behind MO Ruyue with light footsteps.
He hoped that MO Ruyue would personally help him choose his clothes.
MO Ruyue brought Li Zeyan to the shop where the clothes were sold. The owner of the shop was very enthusiastic.
Miss,e and take a look. My clothes are fashionable and cheap. Dont miss them!
The boss shouted loudly as he sized up the woman in front of him.
He felt that a big business wasing.
MO Ruyue looked at the clothes, shook her head, and frowned.
Young Lady, are you dissatisfied with anything?
The boss asked.
Do you have anything more expensive? One tael of silver is too cheap. Now that she had money, she wanted to buy better quality clothes.
Things were different now.
The corner of the bosss mouth twitched slightly. He had never seen such a person before.
He had only met people who thought the clothes were expensive and bargained with him. He had never met anyone who thought the clothes were cheap.
He really didnt know what to say.
The boss thought for a moment and said,Then Ill sell it to you at a higher price?
Mo Ruyue was stunned when she heard the bosss words.
She stared at the boss suspiciously and pointed at herself. Do you think Im a fool or an idiot?
Did he have the nerve to say such a thing?
No, no, no, I didnt mean that. Miss, dont you think the clothes are too cheap? I can sell it to vou at a higher price.
The boss quickly exined.
One tael of silver was too cheap, so he would sell it for five taels of silver.
Wasnt that expensive?
Then the quality of your clothes is not worth the price. I dont just want expensive ones, but also reliable quality.
MO Ruyue had always felt that cheap goods were not good, and good goods were not cheap.
Of course, when they had no money, they could only buy cheap ones. They couldnt pretend to be rich.
He would live a life of as much money as he had.
Didnt she be better off? That was why he wanted to improve the quality of his life.
l understand, I understand. I understand what you mean.
The boss chuckled and led MO Ruyue and Li Zeyan into the store behind him. The things sold outside were all cheap. The really expensive things were in the room.
In their small town, there were rtively few rich people. There were many people who had no money.
Miss, be careful of your steps. Pleasee in.
The boss was in a good mood. It was rare to meet a rich person, so he naturally had to treat him well. One piece of clothing sold to a rich person could offset seven or eight pieces of clothing sold to a poor person.
The clothes are for him to wear. Bring out the clothes of good style and quality.
Mo Ruyue raised her chin slightly.
He felt that his entire body was filled with the aura of a nouveau riche.
Alright, the two of you wait here for a moment. Ill be right back.
The boss left excitedly..
Chapter 707 - 707: Useless Trash
Chapter 707 - 707: Useless Trash
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Seeing that the boss had left, Li Zeyan approached Mo Ruyue and whispered, Sister Ruyue, well just buy the clothes from takeout. We dont have to buy anything too good.
Silly little brother, big sister has money. Besides, 1 dont know where she found those old clothes outside and brought them over to sell.
Dont talk too much. Where am I going to look for female clothes?
Suddenly, MO Ruyues gaze was attracted by the female outfit at the side.
She walked over to take a look. There were two dresses that she liked more and more. One was violet and the other was pale blue.
The boss came out with some clothes and said happily, Miss, these clothes are all fashionable and of good quality. Take a look and see if theres anything that suits your eyes.
MO Ruyue casually looked at it and said to Li Zeyan,You choose.
Li Zeyan noticed that MO Ruyue was not interested in choosing clothes for him. He nced at the clothes and pointed at them casually. Just those two.
Then why dont you try it first, Little Lord?
Yes.
Li Zeyan went to change his clothes, while MO Ruyue was still looking at the other clothes.
After a while, Li Zeyan came out and the boss praised him.
Good temperament, good temperament. Wearing this, you look like a young master of a royal family.
He looks dignified and handsome. This dress suits the little young master too well.
Li Zeyan listened to the boss praise and stared at MO Ruyue, hoping that he could also receive MO Ruyues praise.
He was filled with anticipation.
Mo Ruyue turned around and sized up Li Zeyan. She nodded slightly and said,Yes Not bad.
Sister, do you like it?
Li Zeyan asked as he looked down at his clothes.
MO Ruyue smiled. It doesnt matter whether I like it or not. The important thing is whether you like it or not. If you like it, well buy it.
If Sister Ruyue doesnt like it, then Zeyan naturally doesnt like it either.
Li Zeyan said softly.
What kind of theory was this? MO Ruyue was full of question marks.
However, she was toozy to continue choosing clothes with Li Zeyan. Seeing that the clothes were okay and not too ugly. she nodded and said.l think I quite like it.
Really?
Li Zeyans eyes instantly lit up.
Of course.
Then Ill take this dress.
Li Zeyan was overjoyed.
The remaining two are also included. MO Ruyue said heroically.
After buying Li Zeyans clothes, she pointed at the womens clothes on the hanger and said,Boss, Ill buy these two clothes.
Miss, do you want to try?
No need, just wrap it up.
MO Ruyue had already done it, and it matched her figure perfectly.
There were only two pieces of clothing in her room, and she had to wear them over and over again. As the saintess, she represented the face of the demon race, so she had to wear better.
He couldnt lose face for the Demon Lord.
Alright.
The boss smiled happily. This time, he sold a total of five clothes. He had made a huge profit today, so he could eat more tonight.
How much?
MO Ruyue asked.
The boss calcted and said with a smile,A total of one hundred and two taels.
After all, he had sold so much, so he should give him some benefits.
One hundred taels.
MO Ruyue immediately took out a hundred taels.
Thank you, miss.
The boss smiled brightly.
After MO Ruyue bought the clothes, she prepared to return to the Devil Realm. Li Zeyan followed behind her.
Stop, dont run!
She saw someone running towards her, and MO Ruyue immediately dodged to the side.
Li Zeyan was not so lucky. He was knocked to the ground.
He groaned and the bag in his hand fell to the ground.
The person chasing after him ran to the side.
MO Ruyue retracted her gaze from those people and walked up to Li Zeyan.Are you alright?
Im fine.
Li Zeyan said that he was fine, but MO Ruyue noticed that his hand seemed to have been grazed.
She reached out and pulled Li Zeyan up. She nced at the wound on his hand and already injured, yet you still say that youre fine.
Its just a small injury. Its not a big deal.
Lets go to the pharmacy to buy some medicine.
MO Ruyue walked towards the pharmacy without any exnation.
Sister Ruyue, its okay. Its just a scratch
You child, shut up and listen to me!
MO Ruyue couldnt be bothered to argue with Li Zeyan and directly interrupted him.
Li Zeyan stared at MO Ruyues back and looked down at the wound on his hand.
Sister Ruyue is so domineering, soLike
Picking up the things on the ground, Li Zeyan quickly followed.
When they arrived at the pharmacy, MO Ruyue asked for some medicine for wounds and cleaned Li Zeyans wounds.
After doing all this, the two of them returned to the Demon Realm.
Im going to rest. Dont make too much noise to disturb me.
After MO Ruyue finished speaking, she went straight to her room to rest.
Li Zeyan nodded obediently. From time to time, he would look down at his hand. Sister Ruyue had applied medicine here.
Xuanling immortal sect
Lan Qi waited for MO Ruyue at the agreed location for an entire day, but she did not appear.
Hence, he returned to the Gate of Heaven.
Because MO Ruyue said that she would wait at the appointed ce every month. If she appeared, it meant that something had happened in the Devil Realm. If she didnt appear, it meant that nothing had happened.
Lan Qi did not think too much about whether MO Ruyue had betrayed him.
As far as he knew, no one would willingly stay in the Demon Realm. It was not like everyone did not know the reputation of the Demon Realm.
Eldest Senior Brother, where did you go? Master hase out of seclusion. Second Senior Brother Ji Xianfeng asked curiously when he saw Lan Qi return.
Lan Qis face darkened, and a hint of panic shed in his eyes. He said,Master hase out of seclusion?
Yes, I am.
Ji Xianfeng responded. He wanted to ask more, but Lan Qi had already left.
Ji Xianfeng was left at a loss.
The quiet pce was surrounded by lotus roots, and the lotus leaves were endless.
The pond was filled with blooming lotus flowers.
These lotuses were undefeated all year round.
Lan Qi rushed to the Seven Stars Hall. There was a faint fragrance in the hall. The three-cauldron golden incense burner was emitting a curling incense.
Behind the screen sat a figure.
Wee, Master. Has Master broken through?
Lan Qi kneeled down and pretended to be concerned.
Although he could not sense his masters strength, he could feel that his master seemed to have be stronger.
He should have already broken through to the Nascent Soul realm.
It must be known that there were only a few Nascent Soul cultivators in the Nine Regions. In the past hundred years, there had not been a single person who had sessfully transcended the tribtion.
Even Golden Core cultivators were rare.
The man said faintly, He hasnt broken through. Has anything happened in
Xuanling Immortal Sect these days?
Replying to Master, these days have been peaceful and nothing has happened.
Lan Qi honestly responded to the the sea of stars message.
Xuanling Immortal Sect was indeed fine. Under his leadership, everything was normal.
Ling Shoumo looked up slightly, his eyes clear. What about the Demon Realm?
There isnt anything major over there. Its just that theyve chosen a new Holy Maiden, and this Holy Maiden isnt very active.
Lan Qi answered honestly.
This MO Ruyue was really too much. It had been so long, but there was no news at all. He didnt know what the Demon Realm was going to do next.
What a useless piece of trash.
Lan Qi cursed in his heart.
Ling Shoumo didnt say anything. He closed his eyes and continued to meditate..
Chapter 708 - 708: Helping Master Out
Chapter 708 - 708: Helping Master Out
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
By the way, I found out about the whereabouts of the Heaven-cleaving Sword a few days ago. Ive already sent Little Junior Sister and Third Junior Brother to look for it. I heard that the Demon Realm has also sent people people to look for the Heaven-cleaving Sword. We cant let the Heaven-cleaving Sword fall into the hands of the Demon Realm people
Originally, he wanted to keep the Heaven-cleaving Sword for himself, but after thinking about it, he decided to find it and give it to his master.
Perhaps the Immortal Venerable would make him an elder of Xuanling Immortal Sect if he was happy.
Generally speaking, only cultivators in the Golden Core Stage could be elders of Xuanling Immortal Sect.
He was currently a Foundation Establishment cultivator, not far from the Golden Core stage, but it was very difficult to break through.
Apart from money, he also had to rely on luck.
Only by bing an elder of Xuanling Immortal Sect could he be different from other disciples.
He wanted to be a superior immortal sect elder.
After bing an elder, he would be able to be respected everywhere.
Heaven ying Sword
Ling Shoumo recited a few words. This sword was a righteous sword. It really couldnt fall into the hands of the people of the Demon Realm.
The Heaven-cleaving Swords strength was extraordinary. If it was lost, it would be a loss for the entire immortal cultivation world.
l understand. You can leave now.
Yes.
Lan Qi responded and left the Seven Stars Hall.
Devil World
The next day, MO Ruyue changed into a pale blue dress and went to the Devil Pce.
Master!
She shouted loudly to remind the demon that she was here.
He didnt want her to encounter a showering scene in broad daylight.
Then, she identally barged in and fell into the Demon Lords bathtub.
However, he couldnt find her anywhere.
Seeing that the door of the side hall was closed, she pushed it open.
Suddenly, MO Ruyue felt a warm breath, and the corners of her mouth twitched.
There were really people showering in the middle of the day!
She didnt continue to walk inside. Instead, she silently retracted her leg and closed the door.
Fortunately, he discovered it in time and did not see the naked body. Men naturally did not need to take responsibility.
In the room, in the soup pool, the water rippled, but there was no one inside.
However, when he looked carefully, he found something underwater.
Ming Sihan noticed that the door was closed, so he restrained his killing intent.
A ck dragon head emerged from the water, its dark red eyes cold.
Gradually, the dragon head turned into a human. He had long silver-white hair, and his skin was pale and transparent. His handsome face was like a god. However, he was not a God, but a demon seed that had fallen into the abyss.
He transformed into a human, and the ck dragon scales on his body gradually disappeared, leaving only white skin.
MO Ruyue was waiting outside. Was the demon trying to seduce someone by bathing in broad daylight?
Tsk, tsk, tsk, how coquettish!
Of course, this was just a thought in MO Ruyues mind.
The demon was cold and heartless, he would never try to seduce anyone.
The only thing on that mans mind was probably to kill.
After a while, the door creaked open.
MO Ruyue stood up and looked at the man in a dark purple robe. She chuckled and said, Master, I didnt expect you to be bathing inside. 1 didnt see anything.
Wouldnt he be scared to death if he saw it!
Ming Sihan thought to himself. After seeing his real body, MO Ruyue could not stay.
Why are you looking for me?
Ming Sihan said as he walked towards the front hall. He remembered that he had asked MO Ruyue toe and find him tomorrow.
Did this guy remember the date wrongly?
He had to admit that the skewers that MO Ruyue had sent over were really delicious.
Master, dont you have a mission for me? What mission is it? MO Ruyue asked curiously and followed closely behind Ming Sihan.
This mans back was quite broad, like a wall.
He did not know if it was hard.
Didnt I tell you to rest for two days beforeing to find me?
Ming Sihan said in a low voice.
The Holy Maidens of the past had never seen someone so proactive. They would do whatever he said.
Moreover, there had never been a Saintess like MO Ruyue.
l only want to help you solve your problems andplete the task you assigned me as soon as possible, MO Ruyue said sincerely.
She mainly wanted to go out and make money, and at the same time, she wanted to tter Ming Sihan to increase his interest.
Recently, I have found the whereabouts of the Heaven-cleaving Sword. Although I have sent Xia Zhixing and Shen Yunyan to look for it, I am worried about them. So, I hope you can bring the Heaven-cleaving Sword back and not let anyone else get it.
Ming Sihan suddenly stopped in his tracks. MO Ruyue, who was behind him, also stopped in her tracks hurriedly.
Otherwise, he would have crashed into the thick wall.
MO Ruyue listened to the Demon Venerables words and nodded thoughtfully.Alright, Ill set offter.
You dont have to be so anxious.
No, I must find the Heaven-cleaving Sword and give it to Master as soon as possible.
Seeing how determined MO Ruyue was, Ming Sihan could only say,Then be careful on the road. Dont be rash. Yes, I will follow Masters instructions.
Master, I will take my leave!
MO Ruyue turned around and left before the man could say anything.
Ming Sihan turned around and stared at MO Ruyues back as she left. Why did he feel that this woman was a little heartless?
He said that she was heartless, but she was so loyal to him.
What an ancient spirit.
Ming Sihan shook his head secretly, his voice filled with helplessness.
That woman woulde back.
Ming Sihan was very sure because he hadnt told MO Ruyue about the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
After a while, MO Ruyues figure appeared in Ming Sihans line of sight.
Master, you havent told me anything about the Heaven-cleaving Sword. MO Ruyue scratched her head and leaned against the wall, panting.
When she was able to learn the flying sword technique, she would definitely learn it immediately. Walking was really killing her. He had already run far away, but now he had to run back.
He had taken a few more unnecessary steps.
Ming Sihan saw MO Ruyue panting and smiled helplessly,The clue to the
Heaven-cleaving Sword is in the Sishui area.
MO Ruyue looked at the smile on the mans face and thought that she had seen wrongly. This man could actually smile?
When she smiled, it wasnt as serious as before. It felt quite gentle.
Alright, Master. Goodbye.
MO Ruyue responded and turned to leave.
To be honest, she didnt even know where Si Water was, but as long as she had a map, she would know where to go.
Sister Ruyue, are you going out?
Seeing MO Ruyue packing her luggage, Li Zeyan leaned against the door frame, his eyes revealing his reluctance to part.
She had only been back for two days and was going out.
Yes, I want to go Time to do a mission.
Originally, he wanted to say that it was the Heaven-cleaving Sword, but after thinking about it, it was better not to casually reveal his purpose. Although Li Zeyan was on her side, it was better to be safe than sorry.
Sister Ru Yue, can I go with you?
Of course not. You cant protect yourself. Ill have to be distracted to protect you.
MO Ruyue quickly packed her luggage and hung it on her shoulder. She nced around the room to see if there was anything else she needed to bring.
She was afraid that she would only remember that she had left something behind after she left.
Li Zeyan clenched his fists as disappointment shed in his eyes..
Chapter 709 - 709: Scolding Yourself
Chapter 709 - 709: Scolding Yourself
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue turned around and stared at Li Zeyan. 1 1 left you a cultivation book previously. You have to read it more.
The boys skin in front of her became fairer and no longer had the sallow color from before.
Staring at the pair of brown eyes, MO Ruyue felt that these eyes were different from ordinary people. As for what was different, she couldnt tell.
It seemed to be a human being.
She must have been overthinking. Why wasnt he a human?
Although there were also people in this world who could cultivate into humans, Li Zeyan was not.
Monsters that could cultivate into humans were usually very powerful. Li Zeyan, this weak chicken, was not a monster.
Putting aside all the nonsense, MO Ruyue said to Li Zeyan, Ill be leaving first.
With that, he walked out.
Sister Ruyue, Ill wait for you toe back. Li Zeyan looked at MO Ruyues back and waved.
He left again.
He wondered how many days he would be away this time.
Li Zeyan was a little disappointed.
MO Ruyue walked outside. The sun above her head was covered by clouds, and the pine trees beside her rustled in the wind.
The weather was suitable for traveling.
Junior Sister Ruyue, where are you going?
When Qi Shaoyu saw MO Ruyue, he immediately called out to her.
It looked like he was going out.
Im doing a mission.
MO Ruyue said simply. This time, she even brought along a seven-colored fire seed.
He wanted to see if he could make some money with the seven-colored fire seed.
It wasnt worth it to exchange the seven-colored fire seed for the storage ring, so she wouldnt do it.
Is this a mission given to you by the Demon Lord?
What else?
If it wasnt the task given to her by the Demon Lord, who else could it be?
MO Ruyue looked at Qi Shaoyu calmly.
Do you need me to go with you?
Theres no need.
MO Ruyue rejected him without hesitation.
She wasnt too familiar with Qi Shaoyu, and they used to be sworn enemies. Senior Brother, if theres nothing else, Ill be leaving.
After saying that, MO Ruyue turned around and left, ignoring Qi Shaoyu.
As for what Qi Shaoyu thought, it had nothing to do with her.
The kind that had nothing to do with him.
Ruyue
Qi Shaoyu looked at MO Ruyues back as she left. He raised his hand but eventually put it down.
Outside, MO Ruyue saw a tall figure stroking a horse and letting it graze. MO Chengfeng turned around and smiled when he saw MO Ruyue.
Eldest Senior Brother?
MO Ruyue walked over. It seemed like Eldest Senior Brother was going on a long trip.
Could it be that MO Chengfeng also had a mission toplete?
She walked towards MO Chengfeng curiously.
Why are you here?
She asked with a smile in her eyes.
Im waiting for you to go to the realm of Hell.
Wait for me?
MO Ruyue was stunned. MO Chengfeng knew that she was going out?
The Demon Lord was worried about you being alone, so he asked me to go with you.
MO Chengfeng replied. He was naturally willing to follow MO Ruyue when the Demon Lord asked him to, but he did not expect the Demon Lord to care about MO Ruyues safety.
In the past, Saintesses did not have such good treatment. The Demon Lord would not care about the safety of a Saintess.
Is he still worried about me?
MO Ruyue thought of that man. She felt that the Demon Commander was still human.
As expected, the rumors outside couldnt be trusted.
With MO Chengfengspany, MO Ruyue felt that things would go much smoother.
She didnt know the way to Si Shui, but MO Chengfeng was there, so he definitely knew the way to Si Shui.
The two mounted their horses and set off together.
Qi Shaoyu silently watched this scene as MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng left the Devil World on their horses.
Why did she reject him? Could it be that he despised his strength for being too low?
The hands by his side were clenched into fists, and his joints were slightly white.
Under MO Chengfengs lead, MO Ruyue spent three days to arrive at the Si River area.
Sishui was a deste and uninhabited ce. The terrain here was steep, and it was often possible to encounter all kinds of monsters. It was a good ce for cultivators to train.
Of course, this was also a dangerous ce. If they were not careful, they might lose their lives here.
The people who came here to train were also in groups.
Where is the Heaven-cleaving Sword?
MO Ruyue looked around and saw a continuous mountain range.
In such a wide ce, where was he going to find the so-called Heaven-cleaving Sword?
MO Chengfeng reined in his horse and nodded slightly.We can only walk the road ahead.
Horses couldnt enter. Even if they did, they would be stabbed by the surrounding thorns.
At that time, it would be even more ufortable.
MO Ruyue got off her horse and stretched her back. She could hear the bones in her body creaking.
Where is the Heaven-cleaving Sword!
He didnt see Xia Zhixing and Shen Yunyan along the way.
MO Chengfeng removed the reins of the horse and patted the horses butt. He said, Lets go back.
The two horses seemed to be able to understand MO Chengfengs words, and they galloped back.
Will they be able to return safely?
MO Ruyue couldnt help but worry that the horse would lose its way.
After all, she had been riding for three days and had gone through countless forks. She might not even be able to remember the way back.
l dont know.
MO Chengfeng also shook his head.
Then why did you let the horse leave? What if the horse got lost?
MO Ruyue could not understand MO Chengfengs behavior.
The two horses lost their way and either became someone elses or became wild horses.
If you dont let the horse leave, do you want the horse to stay here? MO Chengfeng slightly raised his eyebrows. He knew what MO Ruyue meant.
But he did this for the good of the horse.
Thats right. Welle back for our horses and leave after we find the Heaven- cleaving Sword.
MO Ruyue replied earnestly.
MO Chengfeng smiled and understand what you mean, but the spiritual monsters are rampant here. If the horses stay here, they will only be food for the spiritual monsters. I reckon that the horses will be eaten before wee back. Therefore, letting the horses leave here can prevent
Marl from being eaten by the spiritual monsters
Hearing MO Chengfengs exnation, MO Ruyue finally understood.
Sometimes, she treated animals better than humans. Humans might betray themselves, but animals wouldnt.
As the two of them walked towards the Si River, they encountered cultivators from other immortal sects fighting on the way.
He did not know which immortal sect he was from.
MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng sat on the treetops and watched the show. Senior Brother, which of the two sects do you think will have thestugh? Mo Ruyue swayed her legs and watched the scene below with great interest.
She took out a bag of melon seeds from her bag and started munching on them to watch the show.
When they meet us, they can only cry.
The corners of MO Chengfengs mouth curled up slightly. When the snipe and m fought, the fisherman would benefit. It would not be toote for them to go down when both sides were about the same.
Hearing Nio Chengfengs words, MO Ruyue smiled cunningly and said,Senior
Brother, I feel that we are so despicable and despicable.
Uh-huh? MO Chengfeng nced at MO Ruyue and continued,How can you scold yourself?
He had never seen someone scold himself like this.
The people below started fighting over a stalk of Spirit Grass. It was rtively rare for Spirit Grass to be used to refine medicinal pills.
The two groups of people showed no mercy. Some were dead, some were injured, and some were injured.
Senior Brother, have some melon seeds.
MO Ruyue grabbed some melon seeds and handed them to MO Chengfeng. Eat less of this kind of thing to avoid getting angry.
MO Chengfeng did not catch the melon seeds. He did not like to eat them.
It was really difficult to peel the melon seeds..
Chapter 710 - 710: Ant Legs Are Meat Too
Chapter 710: Ant Legs Are Meat Too
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The two of them were chatting on the tree when a man below looked up and immediately shouted, Who are you?
After the man shouted, the two groups of people who were fighting quickly separated and looked up at the man and woman on the tree.
Senior Brother, wait on the tree first. Ill go down and meet them.
After saying that, MO Ruyue put the melon seeds in her arms and flew down from the tree.
Everyone looked at MO Ruyue warily. This woman was pretty, but she gave people a dangerous feeling.
Dont be nervous. Im a good person. 1 1 m the saintess of the demon world.
MO Ruyue smiled and gave herself a random name.
If he used his original name, it would be easy to expose his identity.
When everyone heard that the woman in front of them was the Saintess of the Demon World, they all revealed an expression as if they had seen a ghost. They hurriedly took three steps back and kept their swords ready to face MO
Ruyue.
Demonic Saintess YYYS!
YYYS, what do you want to do?
Looking at the nervous expressions of the people on both sides, MO Ruyue smiled and said, Rx, dont be so nervous. I already said Im a good person.
Who would believe that this woman was a good person!
No one in the Demon Realm was good.
Previously, the Jade Pure Immortal Sect was exterminated by this woman.
I really cant bear to see both of you fight over a Spirit Grass. Were all from the immortal sects, so we should be united and love each other. How can you fight over a Spirit Grass?
MO Ruyues face was full of sadness, and her entire body was emitting the brilliance of a saint.
Shut up!
One of the men scolded in disdain.
MO Ruyue did not get angry. Instead, she smiled gently. Men, dont be so irritable. Youll die if youre too irritable.
Looking at the womans smile, the man felt a chill run down his spine.
He felt like he was being dragged down into the abyss ofmunication by an evil spirit.
He didnt dare to continue speaking and even took a few steps back.
His heart was filled with fear.
In order to stop you from fighting, I will sacrifice myself. I will ept this Spirit Grass for you with tears in my eyes.
MO Ruyue said as she plucked the Spirit Grass from the side and put it in her pocket.
The two immortal cultivators from the two immortal sects could only watch MO Ruyue take the Spirit Grass for herself.
We found it first. Give it back to us!
MO Ruyue smiled. Since its in my pocket, its mine. I wont steal or rob it. Why should I hand it over?
These words angered the disciples of the immortal sects until their faces turned red.
He had never seen such a shameless person.
The two people from the immortal sects were infuriated by MO Ruyue.
This Demon Saintess actually pulled out the Heart Spirit Grass right in front of them.
Isnt this a p to the face?
Thus, the two immortal sects immediately united.
YYYD, leave the Spirit Grass behind, or I wont be polite to you!
Hand over the Heart Spirit Grass!
Nio Ruyues beautiful eyes darted around. Her fingers curled up her hair that fell on her chest seductively. She was so charming.
His voice was also pretentious. No, Ill leave it to you. How are you going to divide it between the two immortal sects? When the timees, they will fight again.
This voice caused all the men present to be in amotion.
It was as if something was scratching them.
Well fight our own battles. Its none of your business!
Its really none of my business that you beat me up, but this Spirit Grass, this Holy Maiden has taken a fancy to it. Anyway, you guys are in a deadlock, so Ill be a good person to the end and help you take the Spirit Grass. Not only are you not grateful, but youre also treating me like this.
Nio Ruyue slightly raised her eyebrows. She definitely couldnt win against him, but she had the Heavenly Retribution Experience Card.
Then, MO Ruyue took a few steps back and bowed deeply to the group of people in front of her. Im sorry!
Everyone was confused. The Holy Maiden actually apologized?
Everyone looked at each other.
In the next second, the sky was clear and lightning shed.
Countless bolts of lightning struck down, striking everyone around them.
In an instant, everyone fell to the ground and twitched.
Nio Ruyue stood up straight and looked at therge pile of corpses on the ground. She pretended to be frightened and wrong with you guys?
No one in the immortal sect knew what had happened.
Just like that, he was struck by lightning.
MO Chengfeng, who was on the tree, watched this scene calmly. This was not the first time.
What secret did Junior Sister have?
MO Chengfeng couldnt help but feel curious.
He flew down from the tree andnded on the ground.
Senior Brother, they were all struck by lightning. They must have done something that incurred the wrath of the heavens. Nio Ruyue said thoughtfully.
It meant that everything had nothing to do with him.
MO Chengfengnded on the ground with a calm expression. He did not intend to ask any more questions.
Since Ruyue was unwilling to tell him, there was no point in asking. He nced at the corpses on the ground and said,Ruyue, whats YYDPS?
Ahem, my nickname.
MO Ruyue coughed lightly and replied with a red face.
In the future, he would rely on YYDPS to dominate the world.
What does mean?
MO Chengfeng didnt quite understand.
He felt that there was another meaning behind it.
But he wasnt very sure.
Uh Its probably the eternal god.
It was understandable that she would be single forever.
Nio Ruyue exined what she knew to MO Chengfeng. The Holy Maiden of the Demon Realm was forever a god! Oh, I see. It seems pretty good. Eternal God.
Mo Chengfeng nodded his head, feeling very awe-inspiring.
Then, he said to MO Ruyue, Lets go. Lets continue on our journey.
Alright, Senior Brother.
MO Ruyue followed behind MO Chengfeng.
After MO Ruyue and the others left, the people from the immortal sect slowly woke up.
What happened?
l think I was struck by lightning!
What about YYYS? Has he left?
Damn it, after snatching the Spirit Grass, I should have killed YYDPS to prevent future troubles!
Everyone was furious.
For some reason, he was struck by a bolt of lightning.
They would never have thought that MO Ruyue had something to do with this.
He only felt that it was a coincidence.
On the other side, MO Ruyue held the Spirit Grass in her palm and examined it. It looked like an ordinary weed, but the grass was shining with a golden light.
The more he looked at it, the more he liked it.
Senior Brother, how much do you think this Spirit Grass can be sold for?
At this moment, MO Ruyue was already thinking of going to the Treasure Trove Pavilion to sell the Heart Spirit Grass.
She didnt know how to use spirit herbs to refine pills anyway.
It was said that refining medicinal pills also required a pill furnace, and a pill furnace could not be bought casually.
However, she could also develop from this aspect.
MO Chengfeng nced at it and sized it up. It should be worth a thousand taels.
Only a thousand taels?
The corner of MO Ruyues mouth twitched slightly. It was not even as valuable as a fresh ck Heart Fruit! I dont care, but ants legs are meat,
It was better than nothing.
MO Ruyue put her heart into her pocket in disappointment.
Seemingly sensing MO Ruyues disappointment, MO Chengfeng couldnt help but ask,Whats wrong?
Its fine. I have to bring back some good treasures this time.
In order to have his own storage ring as soon as possible.
The two of them continued to walk forward. They did not encounter anything strange on the way.
Although there were monsters, they were all rtively weak.
Both sides did not disturb each other..
Chapter 711 - 711: The Grilled Fish Is Missing!
Chapter 711: The Grilled Fish Is Missing!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
In front of them, MO Ruyue saw a waterfall. The huge waterfall blocked their way and they could not continue forward.
Senior Brother, theres no road ahead. Are we going back?
She couldnt fly up to such a height.
MO Chengfeng pursed his thin lips. Ill fly you up.
Im a little heavy.
MO Ruyues face turned slightly red. It couldnt be a princess hug, right?
How awkward would that be?
MO Chengfeng summoned his sword and reached out to pull MO Ruyue.
Follow me and step on the sword.
MO Ruyue secretly wiped her sweat. It seemed that she was overthinking.
Shixiong was not that kind of person.
However, she was still a little worried because MO Chengfeng had said that her flying sword was not very stable.
If she fell from above, she would be half-crippled even if she didnt die!
Although he was a cultivator, his body was made of flesh and blood. He could still die and fall sick.
Dont worry, itll be fine for a short distance.
MO Chengfeng gave MO Ruyue a look to tell her not to worry.
He could still do it.
MO Ruyue hesitated for a moment, but in the end, she chose to believe MO Chengfeng.
It would be too tiring if he went back.
She stepped on the sword and held MO Chengfengs hand tightly.
Afraid that she would lose her bnce, she ultimately chose to hold onto MO
Chengfengs arm.
Are you ready?
MO Chengfeng looked at the woman who was almost hanging on his body, and a hint of a smile shed across his eyes.
It seemed that Junior Sister was really a little afraid. His arms were tightly hugged by his junior sister.
Im readv.
MO Ruyue answered without wasting any time.
She might be reckless.
Some people would do a lot of psychological preparation when facing danger.
MO Ruyue immediately went up to the stage.
Mo Chengfeng rode on his sword and it flew up quickly.
He felt his arm being hugged even tighter.
Knowing that MO Ruyue was a little scared, he quickly flew up the waterfall andnded on awn.
How is it? Are you still afraid?
MO Chengfeng asked as he looked at the silent MO Ruyue.
Was this child scared silly?
He reached out his hand and stroked MO Ruyues head, his eyes filled with concern.
No, I just feel a little dizzy. Ill be fine in a while.
MO Ruyue sat on the ground. She didnt expect to faint from the sword. Fortunately, it was only for a short while.
If it was too long, she was afraid that she would vomit on MO Chengfengs clothes.
Gulp! Gulp! Gulp!
Someones stomach started to sound.
MO Ruyue raised her head and looked at MO Chengfeng. MO Chengfeng looked slightly embarrassed. He clenched his fist and pressed it against his lips.l havent eaten for a long time.
MO Ruyue covered her mouth andughed. She stood up and
Brother, go catch two fish. Lets roast fish and eat before we go.
Alright, wait here.
MO Chengfeng responded. There was a waterfall here, so there must be fish in it.
Shixiong went to get the fish, and MO Ruyue went to collect the firewood.
By the time she came back from collecting firewood, MO Chengfeng had already cleaned the four huge fat fish and dug out their internal organs.
Mo Ruyue had found some wild ginger by the river, which was perfect for removing the fishy smell.
Ruyue, what are these?
Mo Chengfeng asked curiously. He knew a lot about spirit herbs and spirit fruits.
However, he really didnt know much about wild vegetables.
This is wild ginger. It can be used to remove the fishy smell from fish.
MO Ruyue said with a smile. She crushed the wild ginger with a stone and smeared the juice on the fish.
She did all of this skillfully and did not notice MO Chengfengs meaningful gaze.
He used a knife to cut open the sides of the fish and continued to smear the ginger juice.
After everything was done, MO Ruyue tied the fish to a fresh bamboo stick.
MO Chengfeng had already started the fire, and the two of them started to roast the fish by the stream.
The sun was shining brightly, and the shade of the tree above her head was cast. MO Ruyue was cooking the grilled fish seriously.
A breeze blew past, bringing with it waves of coolness. As far as the eye could see, there were beautiful mountains and clear waters.
The waves in the water were jagged, and time was calm.
Mo Chengfeng enjoyed this kind of time very much. He seemed to be at peace with the world.
But he knew that this was only temporary.
Even if it was only for a short time, he cherished it very much.
Ruyue, did you learn this from someone before?
Otherwise, how could he be so skilled?
MO Ruyue raised her head. There was a thinyer of sweat on her forehead. Her fair cheeks were pink and her face was like a peach blossom.
Her beautiful eyes were clear and the corners of her eyes were slightly raised, making her look mesmerizing.
MO Chengfeng suddenly felt as if his heart had been struck.
Think about it yourself and slowly learn it.
She was more interested in cooking.
When he had nothing to do, he would watch videos and watch how others cooked. Then, he would follow suit.
This was just her personal hobby. If she was asked to do this specifically, she would not like it.
Who didnt like to have their clothes and food handed to them?
Ruyue never mentioned your family. Where is your family?
What kind of family would raise such a strange girl?
She was kind, but she actually thought of such a cruel punishment.
She was vicious, but she brought back Li Zeyan and wanted to avenge him.
She could be said to be careless, but she was able to take care of his emotions.
She was meticulous, but she always seemed to be heartless and did not think too much.
Which one was the real her?
What a strange girl.
MO Ruyue slowly averted her gaze from MO Chengfeng. She was adding firewood to the fire. How guilty!
What should he do?
She did not have all the memories of the original host.
He had no memory of his past at all.
My family is too poor. My mother ran away and my father married another woman. Since I was young, my father didnt dote on me and my mother didnt love me.
MO Ruyue put on a pitiful expression as tears welled up in her eyes.
Of course, she had made up her own story.
Actually, her original background was simr. Her mother ran away, her father married another woman, and she followed her grandmother.
After Grandma passed away, she was really alone.
The story was made up, but the tears were real.
Thus, MO Chengfeng easily believed him.
He did not expect his junior sisters background to be as miserable as his.
He reached out to wipe MO Ruyues tears and said firmly, Dont cry, From now on, the senior brother will be your family.
Senior Brother, thank you.
MO Ruyue sniffed with tears in her eyes, her eyes filled with grievance.
Perhaps MO Ruyues background was simr to his, so MO Chengfeng was exceptionally sympathetic towards MO Ruyue.
Moreover, MO Ruyue shared the same surname as him.
He pitied MO Ruyue even more.
l will protect you in the future.
Mo Chengfeng said with a firm expression.
Yes, Ruyue will also protect Senior Brother.
MO Ruyue said sincerely.
MO Ruyue was touched that someone wanted to protect her, regardless of whether it was real or fake.
Seeing that the fish was not cooked yet, MO Chengfeng ?go to the forest to see if there are any wild fruits and pick some to eat.
Alngnt, senior Drotner, De carerul.
MO Ruyue watched MO Chengfeng leave.
After he left, MO Ruyue washed her face with the stream water. When she returned, she realized that the grilled fish was gone!
What the hell!
MO Ruyue stood up in horror. She looked around but did not find any trace of the grilled fish.
At this moment, MO Ruyue felt a chill run down her spine. Could she have encountered some monster?
She picked up another bamboo stick, tied another fish to it, and continued to roast it.
This time, Mo Ruyue did not leave..
Chapter 712 - 712: Leech
Chapter 712 - 712: Leech
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Suddenly, half a fishtail fell from the tree. MO Ruyue looked up at the tree and saw a furry thing on it.
Seeing that it had been discovered, the furry thing quickly jumped onto another tree.
It looked like a squirrel, but it wasnt a squirrel. At this moment, MO Chengfeng returned.
Senior Brother, youre finally back.
MO Ruyue shouted.
Come, eat some wild fruits.
As he spoke, MO Chengfeng ced the wild fruit on the leaf.
He nced at the fish and the fish still not ready?
His heart was filled with doubts.
He remembered that when he left, his fish was almost ready. Why did it still look inedible now?
MO Ruyue rubbed her brows and said with a headache,Senior Brother, you dont know. I washed my face just now and realized that the fish was gone.
Then, a fish tail fell from the tree and 1 found out who ate the fish.
Is that so?
MO Chengfeng was skeptical.
Shixiong, its absolutely true. That guys whole body is furry, hes really a little thief.
MO Ruyue was afraid that she would be misunderstood.
What if MO Chengfeng thought that she ate it secretly?
She wasnt the kind of person who would take everything for herself.
Furry? Is it Squirrel?
Its not a squirrel. Even if its a squirrel, it shouldnt eat fish, right?
Then I dont know what it is.
MO Chengfeng shook his head and looked down at the grilled fine.
Dont we still have three fish?
It was just a fish that was lost. It was not a big deal.
After grilling a fish, MO Ruyue passed the grilled fish to MO Chengfeng.
Come, eat the fish!
MO Chengfeng took the fish from MO Ruyue and smelled it. He smells so good.
Just as he was about to eat, he saw a furry figure flying over.
The grilled fish in MO Chengfengs hand was instantly snatched away by the furry figure.
The two of them were stunned as they watched the Bandits back crawl into the bushes.
l just said that the fish was eaten secretly.
MO Ruyue turned her head and spoke in a calm tone.
Previously, she had said that she was not the only one who ate all the food, but it was clear that MO Chengfeng still did not quite believe her.
Now that he believed it, he directly snatched it from her.
It was so fast that he didnt see it clearly.
The two of them were qiyer and foundation stage cultivators, but they were bullied by a furry little animal.
Where was the justice?
MO Chengfeng also retracted his gaze, his hand still in the position of eating fish.
He looked at MO Ruyue and nodded slowly. Its not stealing. Its clearly daylight robbery. Ive never seen such a bold animal.
It was as if they didnt exist.
He was too bold.
Stealing food from the tigers mouth!
Gulp, gulp, gulp. This time, their stomachs were growling.
They smiled at each other and looked at the remaining two fish.
Senior Brother, there are only two fish left. We have to protect ourst lunch!
MO Ruyue ced the two fish on the fire at the same time.
They could only eat wild fruits to fill their stomachs.
That furry little pet was too arrogant.
Do you believe that she put rat poison in the grilled fish?
Of course, she didnt bring any rat poison with her.
Thest two fish were finally cooked. MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng both gave each other a determined look.
He quickly reached out for the grilled fish.
With a swoosh, the figure jumped down from the tree and snatched thest two grilled fish.
MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng only had two bamboo sticks left in their hands.
Damn it, 1 want to kill it.
She roared and couldnt hold it in anymore. She pulled out her ghost sense and chased after the furry figure.
Mo Chengfeng hurriedly stopped MO Ruyue. Junior Sister, calm down, calm down.
Senior brother, Ive calmed down. I really cant calm down.
Mo Ruyues eyes were filled with killing intent.
Stealing food from the tigers mouth, he really didnt put her Saintess in his eyes.
Humiliation, it was a great humiliation.
Junior Sister, thats a Mountain Ghost. We cant catch up to it. We cant catch up to it.
MO Chengfeng almost knew what that thing was.
The mountain ghost was the same size as a squirrel, and its appearance was simr. It had brown fur all over its body, and its speed was extremely fast. It could be called lightning.
An adult Mountain Ghost usually had white fur. It was said that an adult Mountain Ghost could transform into a human.
The chances of encountering a mountain ghost in the forest were even lower than encountering a ghost.
Damn it, Im so angry!
MO Ruyue withdrew her ghost thoughts. She was furious at the furry thing.
It took her a long time to calm down.
Shixiong, you said that thing was a mountain ghost?
MO Ruyue asked doubtfully.
Thats right. Dont look at how small that thing is. Its very powerful. Even the tigers in the mountains arent its match.
MO Chengfeng picked up the wild fruit and handed it to MO Ruyue. He continued,Come, eat some wild fruit to calm down. Its fate that we met it.
This thing is notmon.
MO Ruyue calmed down and took the wild fruit from MO Chengfengs hands. Her eyes darted around as if she had thought of something.
Senior Brother, are mountain ghosts protected by thew? she asked in a low voice.
MO Chengfeng did not quite understand what MO Ruyue meant.
Who is thew?
They had only heard of thew, but had never heard of thew.
l want the mountain ghost to be a pet. It shouldnt be tortured, right?
MO Ruyue raised her eyebrows expectantly.
Such a powerful mountain ghost would definitely be very cool to use as a pet.
He had raised a small snake before, but after that, the small snake slipped away and never appeared again.
Now that she saw the mountain ghost, MO Ruyue felt that she could do it again.
Sure, of course.
MO Chengfeng replied, but in MO Ruyues ears, it became, Of course, Ill punish you.
The main point is that you have to make the mountain ghost willingly be your pet, MO Chengfeng continued. Otherwise, its useless even if you think about it.
Many people wanted the mountain ghost to be their pet, but they never had the chance.
It was already good enough to have one Mountain Ghost among 10,000 mountains.
Mountain ghosts were very rare and not so easy to tame.
This is a problem.
Mo Ruyue touched her chin. She did not have any good ideas.
She wasnt a beast tamer, so she didnt know what the mountain ghosts liked.
MO Ruyue came back to her senses and looked at the dying fire. She sighed.
The grilled fish was snatched away by the mountain ghost.
Forget it, eating some wild fruits can fill our stomachs. Well get some food after were far away. The mountain ghosts probably live in this area, so its not suitable to roast food here.
Mo Chengfeng drew his sword and shed it into the water.
The water immediately extinguished the firewood beside him.
This was a forest. If there was a fire, how many lives would be lost?
If things went wrong, he and Ruyue might be burnt too.
MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng continued their journey, not noticing the furry thing following behind them.
Aiyo, my mother!
MO Ruyue jumped up in fright and saw a leech lying on a branch in front of her.
Although she was a cultivator, who wouldnt be afraid of this kind of thing?
Leeches, leeches that can suck human blood!
Whats wrong?
Mo Chengfengs dark brows furrowed as he held onto MO Ruyues body.
He did not understand.
What was it that scared Junior Sister so much?
Senior Brother, there are leeches on the branches!
MO Ruyue hugged MO Chengfengs arm tightly, goosebumps all over her body.
Seeing what he was afraid of gave him goosebumps!
He had never been so afraid even when he killed someone..
Chapter 713 - 713: Secrets
Chapter 713 - 713: Secrets
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Leech?
MO Chengfeng focused his gaze and saw a leech the size of a pinky lying t on a branch, waiting for its prey to approach.
This side was wet and slippery, and there was water under his feet. No wonder leeches would breed.
MO Ruyue suddenly hugged MO Chengfeng even tighter. Senior Brother, lets choose another path. Look at the ground!
Mo Chengfeng had already seen it.
The ground was covered with horsetails, and there were even leeches on the tree trunks on both sides.
This scene made MO Chengfengs scalp tingle.
He had never encountered such a situation before.
He stepped back.
Perhaps it had rmed the leeches, as they began to squirm.
Senior Brother, lets run. The two of us cant be bitten by these little things. Otherwise, itll be disgraceful.
MO Ruyue whispered.
After saying that, she turned around and ran back.
After running a few steps, she did not sense Mo Chengfeng following her.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but stop in her tracks. She turned to look at MO
Chengfengs back and said, Senior Brother, why arent you running? We are demonic cultivators, how can we escape?
Senior Brother, lets run. These things are too disgusting. Its not that we cant beat them, but theyre so disgusting that I dont want to deal with them.
If he couldnt win, then it was absolutely impossible.
There were plenty of ways to deal with those leeches.
However, she felt that it was too disgusting and did not want to make a move at all.
Junior Sister, just you wait. Senior Brother will fly you over.
Dont. I feel like there are leeches ahead. I dont want to take this path. MO Ruyue was traumatized by leeches.
This thing could parasitize the human body. He had seen a piece of news before. A leech parasitized in a womans nose or brain. A bloodied leech that wasnt mosaicked was picked up by tweezers.
MO Ruyue was not used to the scene.
The leeches were still alive!
Seeing that MO Ruyue was afraid, MO Chengfeng could only give up.
Lets walk another road.
He had thought that this junior sister had nothing to be afraid of. It seemed that there was something to be afraid of.
Along the way, Hillghost had been quietly following behind the two of them. Senior Brother, do you feel something following behind you? MO Ruyue looked behind her but did not find anything. MO Chengfeng also turned around and dont think so.
Maybe Im thinking too much.
MO Ruyue retracted her gaze and continued walking forward.
After crossing two mountains, a small town appeared at the foot of the mountain.
Theres a small town here!
Mo Ruyue looked excited. A small town meant that there was food there.
The four grilled fish from before had all been snatched by Hillghost, so he was still a little hungry.
Wild fruits could not resist hunger.
Lets go down and take a look.
MO Chengfeng looked at the small town at the foot of the mountain and revealed a trace of surprise.
He and Ruyue indeed needed a good rest.
The two of them quickened their pace and ran down the mountain.
Looking at the people in the town, MO Ruyues beautiful eyes were filled with hunger.
His eyes were almost green from hunger.
Of course, she didnt want to eat people.
As long as there were people, it meant that there was food.
Seeing that the sun had already set, it was a good time to stay here tonight. MO Chengfeng looked at the pir beside him and saw a whitentern hanging on it.
Junior Sister
Just as he was about to ask his junior sister to wait a while before entering, he realized that she had already entered.
He looked around and realized that there was no way out of this ce. How could there be a small town here?
Originally, there were a lot of folk rumors in the Sishui area.
It was better to be careful.
It would not be good if he encountered a man-eating monster.
MO Ruyue took a few steps forward and felt a trace of strangeness.
The people around her seemed to treat her as air, walking past her without even looking at her.
Mo Ruyue held the ghost thought tightly with her left hand and silently took
out a brick from her backpack with her right hand.
MO Chengfeng caught up with her. He looked at the weapon in MO Ruyues hand and said in a low also feel that something is wrong?
Yeah, I was so hungry that I forgot to think. she said calmly.
How could he think so much when he was hungry?
He just wanted to eat some meat to reward his stomach.
Poor stomach, it had suffered with her.
There seems to be something wrong here. Those people cant see us!
MO Ruyue whispered.
She stood there without moving.
MO Chengfeng grabbed MO Ruyues wrist and said,Lets go out.
Alright.
MO Ruyue stepped back.
It was not easy to see a small town, but the town was strange.
The two of them left the town and walked far away.
When night fell, the original town disappeared.
All that was left was awn.
The town has disappeared!
MO Ruyue felt goosebumps on her back as she approached MO Chengfeng.
At this moment, she deeply suspected that MO Chengfeng had led her the wrong way. Other than the two disciples from the immortal sects, she had not met anyone alive along the way.
He had even encountered such a strange thing.
She was not afraid of ghosts in the past, but now she was afraid of ghosts again.
Yes, I am.
Senior Brother, Im not a qualified Saintess. Im afraid of leeches, and Im afraid of that thing!
MO Ruyue whispered.
MO Ruyue did not dare to utter the word ghost.
It was pitch ck around her, and she was extremely scared.
Mo Chengfeng choked and said in a low voice,To be honest, Shixiong is also a little scared.
Then why dont we go and wait outside the Sishui River? Well go to whoever gets the Heaven-cleaving Sword. At that time, it wont be just the two of us who get the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
MO Ruyue thought that MO Chengfeng was not afraid.
There was no one else who was timid.
l think Junior Sister Ruyue is right.
MO Chengfeng nodded.
Senior Brother, can you tell me why youre so calm when youre so scared? I thought you werent scared!
This is all an act. The more afraid you are, the closer that thing will get to you.
In short, he was just pretending to be calm. Junior Sister, dont pat my shoulder. MO Chengfeng said.
Senior Brother, I didnt pat your shoulder!
As soon as he finished speaking, the two of them felt a chill run down their backs.
Ah..
Ah
Ah
Three voices rang out.
Mo Ruyue shouted.
MO Chengfeng shouted as well.
There was also the sound of an animal.
Hillghost was so frightened that it climbed up the tree.
Senior Brother, theres a ghost!
Junior Sister, run!
Mo Chengfeng had lost his usual calmness, and Mo Ruyue had lost her saintess demeanor.
The two of them screamed in fear.
He stared at the moonlight and ran forward.
He hadpletely forgotten that he was a demonic cultivator.
After a while, MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng finally stopped.
Senior Brother, did you see what the ghost looked like?
Its too dark, I cant see it. MO Chengfeng shook his head.
We cant let others know that the two of us are so useless and scared by ghosts. Otherwise, where will our face be?
MO Ruyue felt embarrassed, but fortunately, MO Chengfeng was there to apany her.
The two of them were usually quite bold, but now they were frightened by the ghost.
Lets keep it a secret.
MO Chengfeng looked at MO Ruyue with his deep eyes. Actually, he was not that afraid.
Ghosts couldnt hurt him, but people would.
It was just that the atmosphere was just right, and everything happened naturally.
The feeling of being together with his junior sister was very wonderful. It was a wonderful feeling that he could not describe.
Alright, lets keep it a secret. Pinky swear!
MO Ruyue stretched out her hand. If people knew about her cowardly side, wouldnt she beughed at to death?
MO Ruyue felt especially humiliated today. She had encountered the thing she feared the most in her life.
Leeches, and that thing..
Chapter 714 - 714: Living For Hundreds of Years
Chapter 714 - 714: Living For Hundreds of Years
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Chengfeng found a cave under the moonlight and said, Shall we spend the night in this cave?
Thats the only way.
MO Ruyue replied. She felt that they had lost their way in the forest.
Everything could only wait until tomorrow morning.
Ill go outside to get some firewood. Wait for me here.
As he spoke, Mo Chengfeng was about to leave.
MO Ruyue held MO Chengfengs hand and coughed lightly. Senior Brother, its too dark outside. Ill go with you.
Upon hearing MO Ruyues words, MO Chengfeng saw through it and said, Alright, lets go together.
MO Ruyue would not have been so scared if she had not encountered the disappearance of the town.
When she was at Bird Poop Mountain, it was also dark when she hurried back. She was not afraid at all.
After picking up the firewood, the two of them returned to the cave. The cave was soon lit up.
MO Chengfeng took out a nket from his storage ring and ced it on the ground.
Lie on it and rest. What about you, Senior Brother?
l still have a nket.
As MO Chengfeng spoke, he took out a nket from his storage ring.
He had unintentionally put it in back then, but he didnt expect it toe in handy.
The floor was a little dirty, so she couldnt lie down and sleep.
It was much better with a nket under it.
Seeing that MO Chengfeng also had a nket, MO Ruyue was relieved.
Shey on the nket and turned to look at MO Chengfeng. Goodnight, Senior Brother.
Then, he closed his eyes.
LateAnn?
MO Chengfengs eyes were filled with doubt as he finallyy down.
The fire in the cave flickered, and from time to time, the crackling sound of firewood could be heard.
Bugs were singing outside.
He carefully observed MO Ruyues sleeping face.
The fire gradually dimmed, and Mo Chengfeng closed his eyes.
When the fire waspletely extinguished, a figure carefully slipped into the hole.
She sneakily wandered between MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng.
The next morning, MO Ruyue slowly woke up from her dream. When she opened her eyes, she found herself alone in the cave.
She stood up, feeling puzzled.
Senior Brother wouldnt leave her behind and run away, right?
Just as she was thinking, MO Chengfeng came in from outside with two cleaned fish and a pile of firewood.
This time, the grilled fish will definitely not be snatched away by Hillghost. he said confidently.
The cave was only so big. If the mountain ghost wanted to snatch it, he would have toe in from the outside.
MO Ruyue had been hungry for a long time. Thinking of the fish, she kept salivating.
Ill grill the fish right away.
She couldnt wait any longer.
He quickly prepared the grilled fish.
The bonfire was lit, and the grilled fish was soon ready.
The aroma of grilled fish wafted out from the cave, attracting the attention of the mountain ghost Haraiko.
It quickly headed toward the cave, but it was toote. The grilled fish had already been wiped out.
There was only a pile of fish bones left on the ground.
Senior Brother, Mountain, Mountain Ghost!
MO Ruyue raised her head and saw the mountain ghost at the entrance of the cave. She could not even speak properly.
Hillghost heard the sound and hid behind a rock in fear.
Oh no, had it been discovered?
MO Chengfeng also saw it. This Mountain Ghost actually followed them here. He was quite bold.
Its a pity that weve finished our grilled fish.
MO Ruyueughedcently. She was in a wonderful mood.
She was tired and hungry because she had been robbed of four fish.
Hillghost hid behind the rock and did not realize that his tail had been exposed.
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes and raised her voice.Little thing, do you want to eat grilled fish?
Hillghosts eyes lit up when he heard the word grilled fish.
Her round eyes were sparkling.
He had never eaten such delicious grilled fish before.
It carefully poked its head out, bit by bit, and stared at the woman in ck.
Where was the grilled fish?
If you want to eat grilled fish, you can follow me. 1 can make grilled fish for you. Other than grilled fish, I also know sweet and sour fish, braised fish, steamed fish
At this moment, MO Ruyue was like a human trafficker who was trying to kidnap a child, throwing out all kinds of tempting bait.
This made Hillghost drool from the corner of his mouth.
However, humans were sinister and cunning. Would it be killed if it followed this woman?
Some people came to the forest to catch it and tame it.
Upon hearing MO Ruyues words, MO Chengfeng shot her a nce with an envious look in his eyes.
This kind of treatment was a little too good outside.
Since when could he be treated like this?
Do you want to eat?
MO Ruyue continued, her eyebrows slightly raised.
Although the name of the mountain ghost was a little scary, it was still quite cute, especially its round eyes, which were very pleasing to the eye.
He didnt expect such a cute little thing to be the one who snatched the four grilled fish!
Hillghost nodded hesitantly. Although it could not speak, it could understand humannguage.
It seemed that he would have a lot of fish to eat if he followed this woman.
This woman really wasnt lying to the mountain ghost, was she?
Thinking back to what had happened before, this woman and this man did not seem to havee for it.
Other than grilled fish, I can also make pickled chicken feet and kebabs MO Ruyue continued to trick her into being a mediator.
If he followed her, he would definitely be able to eat and drink well. This was for sure. There was no doubt about it.
The more Hillghost listened, the more tempted he became. He had never eaten anything that was said!
It suddenly felt like it had lived for hundreds of years in vain! MO Ruyue stood up and said to thing, I wont lie to you.
In the end, Hillghost still gave in to the delicious food.
It had never eaten so many delicacies before.
When it was tired of eating, it would return to the mountain.
Thereupon, Hillghost appeared in front of MO Ruyue with a whoosh.
In just a few seconds, he had jumped onto MO Ruyues shoulder.
His speed was like lightning, extremely fast.
MO Ruyue felt that she couldnt even hit the Mountain Ghost with the Wrath of Heaven Experience Card when she saw its speed.
She reached out and rubbed Hillghosts little head.
This child was a little malnourished. He was too thin.
When we get oute Ill take vou to eat delicious food.
This was her promise to Hillghost.
Hillghost felt the womans touch and rolled his eyes in pleasure.
This feeling of being touched was also very satisfying!
It really liked it!
Shixiong, we can take Hillghost and leave now.
Alright.
MO Chengfeng nodded. He was a little jealous of Hillghosts treatment.
Ruyue was too nice to Hillghost.
It made people envious.
Her heart was sour, but she didnt say anything.
The two of them walked out and couldnt help but look at the ce where there was a small town yesterday.
There was nothing there, only a destewn.
The two of them felt like they had met a ghost yesterday!
It was definitely not a mirage.
In this deep forest, anything could happen.
MO Chengfeng and MO Ruyue didnt mention anything about the small town.
Senior Brother, where should we go now?
The n now was to leave this ce, and it would be best if they could join the main group.
MO Chengfeng thought for a moment and randomly chose a direction.
He only knew where Si Water was, but he didnt know much about the terrain inside.
Just as he was about to leave, the mountain ghost on MO Ruyues shoulder started to squeak and pointed in the opposite direction.
MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng looked at each other and chose to believe in Hillghost.
Hillghost must be very familiar with the terrain here. After all, he had always lived here..
Chapter 715 - 715: Two Bones
Chapter 715 - 715: Two Bones
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Little thing, have you heard of the Heaven-cleaving Sword?
MO Ruyue couldnt help but ask out of curiosity. She didnt n for Hillghost to know about it, so she just asked casually.
Some people said that the Heaven-cleaving Sword was sealed in Sishui. Some people said that the Heaven-ying Sword had been taken away by someone else.
Some people even said that the Heaven-cleaving Sword was somewhere else.
However, the Heaven-cleaving Sword was currently in the water. This was a piece of news that everyone believed.
The rest of the information was more or less unreliable.
Hillghost hesitated for a moment. These two people wereing for the Heaven-cleaving Sword!
However, that ce was very dangerous!
Hillghost probably doesnt know where the Heaven-cleaving Sword is. MO Chengfeng continued.
Hillghost was instantly unhappy when he heard that. Someone said that he didnt know where the Heaven-cleaving Sword was!
No one knew better than him.
It stretched out its paw and pointed to the east.
You know where the Heaven-cleaving Sword is?
MO Ruyue paused and asked carefully.
Hillghost squeaked twice,
It already knew where the Heaven-cleaving Sword was.
These foolish humans had underestimated it.
Senior Brother, Hillghost knows.
Then lets go that way!
It didnt take much effort to find it! MO Chengfeng was also overjoyed.
Squeak, squeak, squeak
Theres danger over there!
Is there danger over there? MO Ruyue asked. She seemed to understand what
Hillghost meant.
Wasnt this fate?
Squeak squeak
It was dangerous. It was very dangerous. The two of them could not deal with
it.
MO Ruyue patted Hillghosts head. Although its dangerous there, I have to go there. Thank you, little guy. When theres danger, just run away and dont worry about us.
Squeak, squeak, squeak
How could this woman be so stubborn?
He could only apany them.
Who asked this woman to touch it sofortably?
That pair of hands must have been born to touch it.
Along the way, MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng crossed over mountains and ridges. They asionally encountered monsters along the way, but they were all little monsters.
If he could win, he would fight. If he couldnt, he would run.
At night, MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng rested by the river. Hillghost caught nearly twenty fish in the water.
All twenty fish were roasted.
MO Ruyue ate two, MO Chengfeng ate three, and the rest were all eaten by the mountain ghost.
This time, Hillghost had eaten its fill. Its little belly was round and bulging like a small ball.
Rubbing his belly, Hillghost could only make his body bigger, otherwise his belly would be very big.
MO Ruyue looked at this scene in astonishment. It turned out that the mountain ghost could change its size at will. Could it change its size whenever it wanted to?
This skill was really good!
She was not satisfied with her milky white Yuuko. It would be great if it could grow a little bigger.
At this moment, something seemed to fly over in the sky, but it was not too fast.
Senior Brother, look! Its a shooting star!
Thats not a shooting star.
MO Chengfeng stood up. His eyes narrowed as he looked at the thing that flew past with an unusually heavy expression.
If its not a meteor, then what is it?
MO Ruyue was confused. There were no drones in ancient times.
MO Chengfeng pursed his lips and said, He should be a cultivation expert. Hes riding a sword.
Dont tell me theyre here for the Heaven-cleaving Sword?
MO Ruyue felt that it was highly possible.
He did not expect that there would be such an expert looking for the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Wouldnt that mean that she had no hope of getting the Heaven-cleaving Sword?
Thinking of this, MO Ruyues heart sank.
This was the mission that the Demon Lord had given her, she could not fail!
MO Chengfeng consoled worry about the Holy Church. The Heaven-cleaving Sword isnt that easy to find. If it was, someone would have found it long ago.
MO Ruyue heaved a sigh of relief when she heard what Eldest Senior Brother said.
Senior Brother was right. If it was easy to find, it would have been found long ago.
There were many Yuanying stage masters in this world, but there were still many JieDan stage masters.
Which of those Jindan experts didnt want the Heaven-cleaving Sword?
Then I can rest assured. Shixiong, go to bed early and wake up early tomorrow.
MO Ruyuey down and slept with Hillghost.
Hillghost ate and drank its fill and fell asleep.
The mountain ghost was still in its infant stage.
Devil World
The moonlight was cold. A tall ck figure stood under the moon and looked up at the bright moonlight.
The moonlight elongated the mans shadow.
Ive already been there for five days.
His voice was low, and there was a hint of worry in his eyes.
At this moment, Ye Yunfeng appeared behind Ming Sihan and said respectfully,Demon Venerable, we just received news that Ling Shoumo, the sect master of Xuanling Immortal Sect, is heading toward the Si River. It seems that hes heading toward the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Hes actually going personally?
Ming Sihan tilted his head slightly, feeling a little surprised. Did the Heaven-cleaving Sword need that man to do it himself?
Yes.
Ming Sihan lowered his eyes. It seemed that he couldnt stay in the demon world anymore,
He had to meet Ling Shoumo!
I have to go to Si Water personally. Ill leave the Demon World to you.
Yes, this subordinate will do as you say. Ye Yunfeng replied.
Then, Ming Sihan left on his sword.
Looking at the Demon Lords departing back, Ye Yunfeng had aplicated expression.
Junior Sister Ruyue and Senior Brother MO had both gone to Sishui.
Xia Zhixing and Shen Yunyan also went.
Who would get this Heaven-cleaving Sword?
Ye Yunfeng didnt know the final result and only hoped that everyone could return to the mo territories safely.
Under the guidance of the mountain ghost, MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng avoided all kinds of dangers. The increasingly powerful spiritual monsters made them realize how weak they were.
To deal with those monsters, one had to be at least at the Jindan stage to be able to defeat them.
Along the way, they saw many corpses.
They were probably here to look for the Heaven ying Sword, but they did not expect that they were not strong enough to be eaten up by the spiritual monsters.
Senior Brother, do you think Fifth Senior Brother and Little Junior Sister were also eaten by the spiritual monsters until only their bones were left?
MO Ruyue couldnt help but worry when she saw the remains of a man and a woman on the ground.
It would be too tragic if they turned into white bones.
asionally, he could hear crows croaking in his ears.
It was as if she was experiencing the opening of the three fights against the White Bone Demon.
Think in the right direction. 1 dont know if they will be eaten by the spiritual monsters.
MO Chengfeng shook his head. Who would know about such things?
Now, they couldnt even protect themselves.
Fortunately, they had the help of the mountain ghost, otherwise they might have be the spiritual monsters meal.
The further he walked, the more exhausted he became.
It made people dizzy and weak.
l cant walk.
MO Ruyue sat on the floor, exhausted. She just wanted to close her eyes and have a good sleep.
She felt that she must have been poisoned.
Ruyue, dont sleep.
Ruyue, cheer yourself up.
MO Chengfeng shouted loudly. Even though he felt that his body was not used to it, he definitely could not fall.
If he copsed, he might really die here,
The mountain ghost did not react at all. It looked at MO Ruyue in confusion, not understanding why this woman was not leaving.
Senior Brother, Im really too sleepy.
MO Ruyue had never felt so tired before.
In the dense forest, the sunlight could not shine in at all.
There was ayer of white mist floating in the air, carrying a little strangeness.
Hillghosts round eyes rolled as if it had thought of something.
So it jumped up the tree and left quickly.
He jumped from tree to tree and disappeared into the forest..
Chapter 716 - 716: An Ugly Duckling Becomes a White Swan
Chapter 716 - 716: An Ugly Duckling Bes a White Swan
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Chengfeng couldnt care less about what Hillghost was going to do.
He gritted his teeth and helped MO Ruyue up from the ground.
Before they came, they didnt expect that the path to find the Heaven-cleaving Sword would be so difficult and dangerous.
Ruyue, Ill bring you out of here.
MO Chengfengs cultivation was higher, so he was not as weak as MO Ruyue.
However, he felt that his physical condition was not good either.
After a while, Hillghost appeared in front of MO Chengfeng with two fruits in his hands.
Squeak, squeak, squeak
Hillghost quickly jumped onto MO Chengfengs shoulder.
MO Chengfeng understood what Hillghost meant. He took a fruit and ate it himself.
There was no taste in his mouth, but he found that his body was gradually recovering its strength.
He ced another fruit in front of MO Ruyues mouth.
Junior Sister, quickly eat this fruit. Youll be fine after eating it.
MO Chengfeng shouted and patted MO Ruyues cheek.
However, MO Ruyue had already lost consciousness and could not open her mouth.
MO Chengfeng didnt have time to think. He directly put the fruit into his mouth and chewed it, then fed it to MO Ruyue mouth to mouth.
Hillghost stood on MO Chengfengs shoulder and looked at the scene before him curiously.
It didnt understand anything.
MO Chengfengs soft lips parted, his face slightly red.
He was just anxious to save people, so he didnt think too much about it.
Only now did she remember their identities.
There was a difference between men and women!
Fortunately, only he knew.
Squeak squeak
MO Chengfeng nced sideways at Hillghost on his shoulder and warned, You didnt see anything, okay?
Hillghosts round eyes blinked innocently.
At this moment, MO Ruyue gradually regained consciousness and her body regained strength.
Senior Brother
MO Ruyue called out weakly and steadied herself.
She suddenly felt something in her mouth.
Thus, he spat out the residue, his facial features twisted together.
MO Chengfeng blushed at this scene.
He didnt dare to say that he was feeding her mouth to mouth.
As long as he was the only one who knew. Mountain ghosts were not considered humans.
Whats in my mouth?
MO Ruyue frowned in disgust and even spat a few times.
Junior Sister, do you feel better now?
MO Chengfeng coughed lightly and did not dare to reply. He could only change the topic.
He could also divert MO Ruyues attention.
l feel much better. I dont know whats going on. I felt like I was about to die before, but now Im fine.
Mo Ruyue only felt that it was a little strange. She raised her hand to touch the mountain ghost on her shoulder. It was so good to see this little fellow again.
Senior Brother, dont you feel ufortable anywhere?
She could not help but suspect that there was marsh gas in the forest.
However, she was fine now.
l did feel ufortable before, but Im fine now.
He looked at Hillghost with his deep eyes and said, This time, its all thanks to the little fellow. It was because he went to find two fruits for us to eat that the two of us were safe.
He definitely had to tell MO Ruyue about such a great contribution.
Upon hearing that it was the mountain ghost who had saved her, MO Ruyue hugged the mountain ghost and kissed him fiercely.
Thank you, little fellow. Its all thanks to you. Otherwise, Eldest Senior Brother and I would be finished.
She really wanted to thank Hillghost.
Hillghost was ttered. Was it being praised?
It seemed pretty good.
However, what it wanted the most was delicious grilled fish.
MO Chengfeng didnt tell MO Ruyue that he had fed her the fruit and chewed it in his mouth before feeding her.
Ruyue probably wouldnt want to know.
There were some things that didnt need to be said.
They continued on their journey and passed through the swamp forest. What entered their eyes was an abandoned altar.
The altar was in the middle of the water. From afar, one could see the words on the stone tablet:
Is this where the Heaven-cleaving Sword is?
MO Ruyue said thoughtfully.
He hesitated.
Such a deste ce didnt seem like a ce that would hide a Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Hillghost pointed at the altar, which meant that the Heaven-cleaving Sword must be inside.
MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng looked at each other and flew over.
However, they were sucked into the water halfway through their flight.
The two men fell into the water uncontrobly. The mountain ghost hugged Mo Ruyues neck tightly.
He didnt give the two of them any room to regret.
MO Ruyue felt that she was done for.
They had juste out of the swamp forest, and now they were going to drown again?
Why was her life so bitter?
MO Ruyue noticed that something was wrong when she kept falling down.
After a long time, MO Ruyue slowly opened her eyes.
He realized that the entire sky was dyed in a strange sunset red.
There were no flowers or trees in the area, only bare mountains.
There was a slight heat wave in the air.
Hillghost and MO Chengfeng had disappeared.
Suddenly, she saw a white figure not far away.
MO Ruyue approached the white figure and whispered, That guy isnt White Impermanence, is he?
She was dead!
MO Ruyue couldnt ept this reality.
She walked over and are you? Are you White Impermanence?
Wuchang was here to im his life?
However, she could only see the back of the white figure.
Dressed in white, if it wasnt White Impermanence, then who was it?
The surrounding scene was like hell. There was no sunlight, only a blood-red sky.
Everything was strange.
If she had known that she would lose her life searching for the Heaven-cleaving Sword, she would not have forced herself.
If you die, you die.
Let Fifth Brother and Shen Yunyan find the Heaven-cleaving Sword themselves.
Was it toote to regret now?
The other party turned around, his handsome face expressionless.
When MO Ruyue saw the mans true face, her expression instantly cracked.
Damn it, how was this White Impermanence? This was clearly the master of Xuanling Immortal Sect
This was also the man that the original host liked.
For a moment, MO Ruyue felt a chill run down her spine, and her entire body broke out in cold sweat.
She actually met her former master from the immortal sect here.
Those deep eyes were as ck as a whirlpool, as if they could suck people in.
She was afraid that the man in front of her would recognize her at a nce, so she did not even dare to breathe loudly.
Obviously, the man in front of her did not recognize her.
Ling Shoumo asked softly, Who are you? What are you doing here?
His voice was calm and without any fluctuation.
Hearing his voice, MO Ruyue heaved a sigh of relief.
Fortunately, she was not recognized by this man.
How could such a high and mighty master of an immortal sect remember a small disciple? She had thought too much and thought too highly of herself.
Furthermore, he had a scar on his face and was the ugliest disciple in the entire immortal sect.
Now that the ugly duckling had turned into a white swan, it was not strange that they did not recognize it.
Why should I tell you who I am? If you cane here, why cant l? This isnt your home. I cane whenever I want. Youre so meddlesome!
MO Ruyue nced at Ling Shoumo from the corner of her eyes.
This was the first time that she had spoken back to Ling Shoumo so openly.
If this was in Xuanling Immortal Sect, how would she dare to do so? Even if she was given ten guts, she would not dare to do so..
Chapter 717 - 717: Successful Brainwashing
Chapter 717 - 717: Sessful Brainwashing
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ling Shoumo also sized up the woman in front of him. This woman looked
extremely beautiful, but her words were so sharp and piercing.
No one had ever dared to speak to him like that.
This made him curious.
Do you know who I am?
Ling Shoumo ced his hands behind his back, his eyes calm.
The person who cane here is not amon person.
However, the girl in front of him had a very low cultivation level.
How did she get here? Was it a coincidence?
MO Ruyue couldnt help but roll her eyes.
Of course, she knew who the man in front of her was.
However, she had to pretend that she did not know and did not want to know.
l dont care who you are. What does it have to do with me?
MO Ruyue said disdainfully.
She rolled her eyes at Ling Shoumo.
Ling Shoumo looked at the other partys disdainful expression and continued,
Im the sect master of Xuanling Immortal Sect.
So what if its the Mystic Spirit Immortal Sect? Im still the Demon Worlds Holy Maiden, Y Yds.
MO Ruyue also exposed her identity.
Although the person this man rejected back then was not her, but the original host, he would not give this man a good look.
These men were all pig trotters.
Bah!
Youre actually from the Demon Realm!
Ling Shoumos eyes turned cold, and there was finally a trace of expression on his face.
This woman that he was a little interested in was actually the saintess of the demon world.
What a demon saintess.
The Saintess that Ming Sihan picked was too weak. Thats right, Im the saintess of the demon world. Mo Ruyue revealed a proud expression.
In Xuanling Immortal Sect, her position was too low.
However, in the Demon Realm, she was the Holy Maiden of the Demon Realm who was second only to one person and above tens of thousands of people.
I see that your aptitude is not bad. How did you end up as a member of the
Demonic Realm? Do you have any difficulties? Were you forced by the people of the Demon Realm?
Ling Shoumo didnt believe that a normal person would choose to enter the Demon Realm.
There must be a reason
MO Ruyue sneered. Who can force me? I volunteered.
She had indeed volunteered to go undercover in the Demon Realm.
However, she had clearly said that it would be three months, but it had been almost three years now, and she was still in the Demon Realm.
Since he couldnt go back, he would sink into oblivion.
Fortunately, the Demon Realm treated her well.
All kinds of benefits exceeded the benefits of the immortal sect.
The sea of bitterness is boundless. You will only stain your hands with blood in the Demon Realm. Leaving the Demon Realm as soon as possible is the best policy.
Ling Shoumo persuaded.
The reputation of the Demon Realm had long be very unbearable.
No one would want to stay in such a notorious ce.
What about me? As long as I make a choice, I will move forward bravely, not hitting a wall, and not looking back.
You cant persuade me.
MO Ruyue opened her mouth unhappily.
Ling Shoumos cold eyes narrowed. This woman was simply stubborn.
Since you dont want to turn back, then Ill help you turn back.
Ling Shoumo slowly raised his hand, preparing to cripple the demonic cultivation of the woman in front of him.
MO Ruyue seemed to know what this man was up to. She hurriedly ran back and said with a solemn expression,What are you trying to do?
This man must be crazy.
Ling Shoumo appeared in front of MO Ruyue in a sh, his beautiful face expressionless.
Naturally, I want you to walk on the right path and stop being stubborn. Are you f * cking crazy? This is my choice. Its none of your business.
MO Ruyue immediately cursed and widened her eyes. This guy was serious.
In an instant, MO Ruyue felt as if her cultivation was about to be sucked away, and a pained expression appeared on her face.
She had already converted her immortal cultivation to demonic cultivation.
To be precise, she gave up on the immortal path and turned to the demonic path.
This venerable self is only giving you a new choice because you are young and ignorant. Otherwise, this venerable self will enforce justice on behalf of the heavens
Just as he finished speaking, a coldugh was heard. What a good way to enforce justice on behalf of the heavens.
A ck figure saved MO Ruyue from Ling Shoumo.
Ming Sihan came just in time. If he hade a littleter, MO Ruyues pitiful cultivation would have been taken away by Ling Shoumo.
MO Ruyue felt as if she had fallen into a broad chest, and the iparably handsome Demon Venerable Master entered her sight.
Master, you came at the right time.
MO Ruyues beautiful eyes were moist as she clutched the mans clothes tightly.
If that little bit of cultivation that he had painstakingly umted was taken away, he did not know how much time and treasures he would have to spend to return to his original cultivation.
His long silver hair fluttered in the wind, his dark red eyes were devilish, his eyebrows were sharp like swords, and his facial features were deep and charming. Especially his thin scarlet lips, which were neither thick nor thin, were extremely good-looking.
Are you alright?
Ming Sihan looked down at the woman in his arms. He didnt expect her to be here.
This woman was much more powerful than he had imagined.
As expected of the chosen one.
l dont feel too good. That guy advised me to turn over a new leaf.
MO Ruyue pointed at Ling Shoumo. One was her former master, and the other was her current master.
If she had to choose between the two, she would definitely choose her master.
Her master belonged to everyone, but her master belonged to her alone.
She was the only disciple of the Demon Lord.
Mo Ruyue was touched by the timely arrival of her Demon Venerable Master.
Ming Sihan let go of MO Ruyue and looked up at Ling Shoumo coldly.
Sect Master Xuanling, you bullied my disciple. Did I let you bully me? he questioned.
His tone was full of gunpowder, and his face was filled with displeasure. Ling Shoumo frowned and said, Ming Sihan, its fine if you go astray. Dont lead innocent people astray!
MO Ruyue retreated from the Demon Venerables embrace. This was the first time she had heard the Demon Venerables name.
Ming Sihan!
This name seemed quite good.
She stood behind Ming Sihan, facing Ling Shoumo.
Hearing Ling Shoumos words, MO Ruyue answered before Ming Sihan sorry, I followed Master voluntarily. Master cant be too good to me!
It was much better than the time of Xuanling Immortal.
If she had to choose again, she would definitely choose to join the Demon Realm without hesitation.
Ming Sihan nced at the woman beside him, the corners of his eyes raised slightly, and the corners of his mouth curled up into an imperceptible smile.
He was very satisfied with MO Ruyues answer.
It was not in vain that he had sincerely wanted to nurture this woman in front of him.
These words made him enjoy himself.
He was quite satisfied.
To be able to say such words, it means that you have been brainwashed by him.
Ling Shoumos face darkened. He didnt expect Ming Sihans brainwashing ability to be so powerful.
An ignorant young girl had been sessfully brainwashed by him.
His hands that were hanging by his sides clenched into fists.
He had to do something.
She couldnt watch more and more people being brainwashed by Ming Sihan.
Ming Sihan held his head high and said casually, You can eat whatever you want, but you cant say whatever you want. Youre the Sect Leader of a Celestial Sect, yet youre ndering me?
Which eye of yours saw me being brainwashed by my master? I was the one who volunteered. Dont nder my master.
MO Ruyue also spoke up for her master.
She was a very realistic person. She would speak up for whoever was good to
her..
Chapter 718 - 718: Died Young
Chapter 718 - 718: Died Young
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ming Sihan had given her the ghost thoughts, the seven m colored fire, and even taught her the Neb Sword Technique.
In the immortal sect, she did not obtain anything. The monthly silver of only five taels of silver might even be deducted by her senior brother.
Now that she thought of some things in the immortal sect, her stomach was filled with anger.
Withoutparison, there would be no harm.
Ling Shoumo didnt look too good. The woman in front of him had beenpletely brainwashed by Ming Sihan.
Ling Shoumo, cant you just be the sect master of your sect? Why do you have to oppose me in every way?
As the sect master of Xuanling Immortal Sect, I definitely wont allow the people of the Demon World to cause trouble in the human world.
The two of them stared at each other, and the air seemed to have thinned. War was imminent.
MO Ruyue was prepared to hide to the side when the two big shots fought. When immortals fought, little ghosts would suffer.
Both of them were very powerful. They were afraid that they would hurt the innocent, so they hid as far away as possible.
At this moment, the earth shook and the mountains shook. MO Ruyue quickly grabbed Ming Sihan who was beside her.
Earth Is there an earthquake?
MO Ruyue asked. She felt that Ming Sihan was as steady as a pir, not moving at all.
All the pebbles on the ground started to shake.
A sharp and piercing sound rang out.
Something seemed to being over.
Its the guardian beast of the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Ming Sihans eyes turned cold as he saw a huge monster crawling over.
Ling Shoumo and Ming Han both looked at the Guardian Beast.
What a big monster!
MO Ruyue looked at the tall monster and swallowed hard.
In front of the monster, the three of them seemed extremely small.
Could Ling Shoumo and Ming Sihan defeat the monster together?
Master, its a good thing youre here. Otherwise, I definitely wouldnt be able to defeat this monster.
Mo Ruyue couldnt help but sigh.
Even a hundred of her wouldnt be enough to fill the gaps between the monsters teeth.
The path to find the Heaven-cleaving Sword was actually so rugged and uneasy.
Fortunately, her respected master appeared in the end.
Arent you with MO Chengshang? Where is he now?
When Ming Sihan came over, he only saw MO Ruyue and Ling Shoumo. He didnt see anyone else.
After hearing what Ming Sihan said, MO Ruyue seemed to remember something and was filled with worry. l dont know where he is either. When I woke up, I found myself here and I even saw him. As she spoke, MO Ruyue nced at Ling Shoumo.
She had not gone to look for MO Chengfeng yet.
Lets deal with this huge monster first before talking about anything else. Ming Sihan didnt ask about Mo Chengfeng anymore.
At this time, Ling Shoumo had already raised his sword to deal with the guardian beast.
Ming Sihan also prepared to go up and deal with the guardian beast.
But before he could go up, MO Ruyue pulled his sleeve.
Is there anything?
Ming Sihan looked at MO Ruyue in confusion.
Master, that Xuanling Immortal Sects sect master looks very powerful. Why dont we let him deal with the guardian beast while the two of us continue to look for the Heaven-cleaving Sword?
MO Ruyue winked at Ming Sihan.Let Ling Shoumo deal with the guardian beast. He looks very capable.
This
Ming Sihan hesitated for a moment.
Why did he feel that this disciple in front of him was a little sneaky?
However, he liked it very much.
Master, isnt this a great opportunity? MO Ruyue continued to encourage him.
It would be much easier for two powerful experts to deal with a Guardian Beast, but it would be much more difficult for one person to deal with a Guardian Beast.
At this moment, MO Ruyues actions were also to take revenge.
Who asked Ling Shoumo to offend her at the Xuanling Immortal Sect and just now?
Then she definitely had to do something to retaliate.
She wanted him to know that women were not to be trifled with.
Im still a shrewd disciple.
Ming Sihan smiled slightly, looking exceptionally handsome.
The pair of dark red eyes stared at MO Ruyues figure.
MO Ruyue followed Ming Sihan to find the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
The Heaven-cleaving Sword should be here.
Master, its a good thing that youve seen the pearl and sent me and Senior Brother MO here to find the Heaven ying Sword. This task was handed over to Fifth Senior Brother and Little Junior Sister Sister. We dont even know when they will be able toplete it, so we cant count on them.
MO Ruyue followed behind Ming Sihan. She spoke ill of Fifth Senior Brother and Little Junior Sister while carefully observing the situation around her.
We really cant count on the two of them.
Ming Sihan agreed with MO Ruyues words and continued to ask,You and MO
Chengfeng must have suffered a lot along the way.
Yes, we crossed mountains and rivers and encountered many powerful monsters and all kinds of dangers. However, when we thought of finding the
Heaven-cleaving Sword and personally delivering it to Master, Senior Brother
MO and I did not dare to ck off at all.
MO Ruyues face was full of emotion, revealing the voice and emotion she had when she participated in the recitationpetition when she was young.
Every word seemed to be from the bottom of her heart.
Really?
Ming Sihan asked. Why did he feel that these words were a little fake?
Was he thinking too much?
Of course its true. Im already here.
MO Ruyue retorted and continued,My sincerity, the bright moon can prove it.
Be careful!
Ming Sihan suddenly grabbed MO Ruyues slender waist and flew into the air.
His expression suddenly turned cold.
MO Ruyue had yet to realize what had happened.
When he came back to his senses, he realized that he was already flying in the sky.
He was flying too high.
He looked down and found that the ground was covered in rolling bubbles, and there was smokeing out of them. If he stepped on it, he might sink into it.
Master, what is that?
Mo Ruyue subconsciously hugged Ming Sihans waist.
As he flew higher and saw further, Ling Shoumo was still fighting with the guardian beast and trembling.
It should be the Nine Winding Sand River.
Ming Sihan said faintly.
As long as one fell into such a ce, they would not be able to use their cultivation.
Even an Aurous Core Stage cultivator would die if they identally fell into this sand river.
Beneath his feet was the Nine Zigzag Mud River. There was no ce tond.
Therefore, he could only hug the woman in his arms.
Master, what should we do now?
MO Ruyue could not help but ask.
He did not expect the journey to find the Heaven-cleaving Sword to be so dangerous.
This was something she had not expected at all.
We can only continue forward.
Hold on tight and dont move.
Ming Sihan looked down at MO Ruyue, hoping that she would behave herself.
l understand.
Was she not well-behaved enough? She did not dare to move at all.
She was afraid that this man would identally let go of her and she would fall into the Jiuqu Muddy River.
She was still young and did not want to die young.
A beautiful life had just begun. How could it end so quickly?
After flying for a long time, Ming Sihan finallynded on the ground with MO Ruyue.
There was a limit to how far cultivators of different levels could fly.
Those who could fly all the time were generally stronger.
If MO Ruyue had wanted to fly by herself, she might have fallen into the river halfway.
Mo Chengfeng should be able to fly here safely.
As for Ming Sihan, it was a piece of cake for him to fly here..
Chapter 719 - 719: Live Target
Chapter 719 - 719: Live Target
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ming Sihan walked forward without saying a word.
MO Ruyue followed closely behind him without saying anything.
The scene before their eyes made them so shocked that they were speechless.
It looked like a huge treasure vault.
The ground here was filled with all kinds of l,veapons.
However, these weapons had already been rusted, and their original appearance could not be seen clearly.
Vicious Battlefield?
MO Ruyue saw a stone tablet. The words on the stone tablet were a little unclear.
When she saw the familiar words, she could not help but recite them aloud.
It was a battlefield for ruthless people.
How ruthless was this?
That is the Wolf Fire Battlefield.
Ming Sihan couldnt stand it anymore and reminded her.
What Vicious Battlefield?
MO Ruyue coughed awkwardly and nced at the man. She walked toward the stone tablet and wiped the dust off it.
It really is the Wolf Fire Battlefield.
MO Ruyue said. She had been careless.
Master, what kind of battlefield is this Wolf Fire Battlefield?
MO Ruyue asked since she didnt understand. Aftering to this ce, she knew this world very well.
Its an ancient battlefield. Back then, people fought here for territory.
Countless elites have died in this ce. The weapons in their hands are also here
That was a long time ago.
Ming Sihan didnt say much.
So, who does that Heaven-cleaving Sword belong to?
There were actually so many people who wanted to take the Heaven-cleaving Sword for themselves. This meant that the Heaven-cleaving Sword was not ordinary.
The Heaven-cleaving Sword does not belong to anyone. It is a divine sword nurtured by all the souls who died in battle here.
If thats the case, then this sword shouldnt be a divine sword, but a demonic sword, right?
MO Ruyue turned her head and nced at Ming Sihan. Of course, the demon sword was rted to death.
She thought it was a matter of course.
Those who died were all immortal cultivators. This world was also the world of immortal cultivators in the beginning.
Ming Sihan exined.
Then, he turned to MO Ruyue and said, You havent even figured out the most basic things. It seems that I have to help you grasp the basics when I go back.
MO Ruyue was somewhat speechless.
What she hated the most were theoretical foundations and knowledge points.
Are you unwilling?
Ming Sihan raised his eyebrows dangerously.
MO Ruyue immediately shook her head and said with a smile,How could I not be willing? Im willing, Im very willing.
Now that she had climbed to the position of Saintess, her sry had also increased. She would try her best to do whatever her boss asked of her. Even if he didnt care about the boss, he had to care about the money.
You cant go against money.
She stillcked a lot of money to buy a storage ring.
The two of them walked towards the depths of the Wolf Fire Battlefield one after another.
MO Ruyue could still see the white bones on the ground. If she came to this ce alone, she would be a little scared.
After walking for a long time, he did not see the so-called Heaven-cleaving
Sword.
Master, weve been searching aimlessly, but we cant seem to find the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
As soon as MO Ruyue finished speaking, Ming Sihan said, Ive found it.
Where is it?
MO Ruyue swept her gaze around but did not see any Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Its right in front of your eyes.
Ming Sihan reminded.
Following his line of sight, she looked in front of her.
In front of her, there was only a rusted sword. The de of the sword was covered in rust, and it did not look like a powerful sword at all.
Is this rusty sword really the Heaven-cleaving Sword?
MO Ruyue was a little confused.
Just as Ming Sihan was about to reach out for the Heaven-cleaving Sword, he saw a sword stabbing towards him.
Youre here so quickly?
Ming Sihans pupils shrank and he dodged the sword attack. He turned around and looked at Ling Shoumo, who was flying towards him, with a calm expression on his face.
Ling Shoumonded next to the Heaven-cleaving Sword. He was dressed in white, and there was not a speck of dust on him.
He did not look like he had fought before.
The people of the Demon Realm are not worthy of touching the
Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Ling Shoumo held a sword in his hand and looked at Ming Sihan coldly. There was no expression on his face.
MO Ruyue had already retreated to the side when Ling Shoumo came over.
If this venerable self isnt worthy, do you think you are?
Ming Sihanughed coldly. There was a hint of disdain in his eyes.
In any case, he was determined to snatch the Heaven-cleaving Sword from this man today.
No matter what method he used, he would take the Heaven-cleaving Sword away.
MO Ruyue calmly looked at the scene in front of her. She felt that Ming Sihan and Ling Shoumo might start fighting.
At this time, she only needed to protect herself.
Therefore, he silently took a step back and tried not to be implicated.
War was imminent.
Since ancient times, good and evil did not coexist. Immortal cultivators regarded demonic cultivators as sworn enemies, and demonic cultivators naturally did not like immortal cultivators.
In MO Ruyues opinion, it was the same for demonic cultivators and immortal cultivators.
Not all demonic cultivators were bad, and not all immortal cultivators were good.
Then we can only fight.
Ling Shoumo raised his sword and shed at Ming Sihan.
MO Ruyue caught Ling Shoumo with her bare hands at lightning speed.
At this moment, the three people present were all stunned.
Why was it that the skill of catching a de with bare hands had not lost its effect?
Previously, when Ling Shoumo went to fight the guardian beast, she did not even have a 100% chance of catching the de with her bare hands. She thought that this skill had lost its effect.
Now
Could it be that only when attacking people could it trigger a 100% chance of catching a de with bare hands?
MO Ruyue could only think so.
These experience cards didnt specify the experience time!
Who knew when it would end?
In fact, she hoped that catching the de with her bare hands would fail as soon as possible.
Unfortunately, all of this was her beautiful wish.
Ling Shoumos eyes turned cold. This woman was so fast that she could even block his sword.
What was his identity?
Was his strength really only at the level of a mere Qi Refiner?
At this moment, Ling Shoumo was suspicious.
The woman in front of him was definitely not as simple as she looked.
Ming Sihan frowned slightly and quietly stared at the weak figure in front of him.
She actually helped him block the sword!
His emotions wereplicated.
He was a Demon Lord and was very powerful. Ling Shoumos sword could not hurt him at all, but she still blocked the sword for him without hesitation.
Mo Ruyue was extremely embarrassed. She did not take the initiative to block the sword. It was a hundred percent that she caught the de with her bare hands that made her involuntarilye over to take the sword.
Disciple
Ming Sihan shouted in a low voice, his hands clenched into fists.
Now that things hade to this, MO Ruyue could not say that she did not do it on purpose.
Her eyes turned cold as she fearlessly said,Master, your disciple will block it for you. You go first!
It was as if everything she did was for her master.
Ming Sihans heart did change, but he didnt want to run away.
Ling Shoumo was not much stronger than him.
If they really fought, it was not certain who would win.
Get out of the way. This is between me and him.
Ming Sihan said in a low voice.
MO Ruyue smiled bitterly in her heart. It would be great if she could leave.
If you guys start fighting, Ill take the sword!
After thinking about it, the best thing to do now was to let the two of them not fight or use swords.
Otherwise, she wouldnt be able to control herself.
MO Ruyue didnt care about the two of them fighting and killing. The point was that she would easily be a live target for them if she was in the middle.
Next time, she would not casually use the reward from the salted fish system..
Chapter 720 - 720: Just You?
Chapter 720 - 720: Just You?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Master, Xuanling Sect Master, can the two of you not fight and tolerate each other? In fact, people who cultivate the devil are not necessarily bad people, and people who cultivate the immortal are not necessarily good people. Why fight to the death?
MO Ruyue tried her best to dissuade him.
The main reason was that he did not want to be a live target.
Impossible, demonic cultivation is the demonic path, and the demonic path is the evil path, and themon people in the world cant tolerate the demonic path.
Ling Shoumo objected to MO Ruyues statement.
The demonic path should not exist.
As expected, one shouldnt casually change the perception of others over the past few decades.
If a few words could change a persons mindset, then the other partys mindset would copse too easily.
From a young age, he had been taught that the demonic path was bad and evil. When he grew up, he had formed a fixed concept. How could his original concept be changed by one or two words?
At this moment, MO Chengfeng appeared in front of everyone with Hillghost.
Senior Brother MO!
MO Ruyue shouted. She thought that MO Chengfeng and Hillghost had disappeared.
So the two of them were together.
Ruyue
MO Chengfeng came over and when he saw Ming Sihan, he said respectfully, Demon Venerable.
Ming Sihans gaze moved between MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng.
When this woman saw MO Chengfengs face, she actually revealed such a bright smile.
Did she really like MO Chengfeng?
Who was more important, him or MO Chengfeng?
With Ming Sihan around, MO Chengfeng seemed a little reserved.
The demon was Ruyues master, but not his.
The reason why he and Ruyue addressed each other as Senior Brother and Junior Sister was because they were addressing each other ording to their seniority in the Demon Realm.
It was an honorific, and there was no other meaning behind it.
MO Ruyues heart thumped when she heard the voice. She nced at Ling Shoumo.
However, Ling Shoumo didnt react at all.
Fortunately, his identity was not exposed.
Ling Shoumo probably didnt remember that Xuanling Immortal Sect had a disciple named MO Ruyue.
This was a good thing for MO Ruyue.
Moreover, there were many people with the same name in this world.
When Hillghost saw MO Ruyue, he jumped down from MO Chengfengs shoulder andnded on MO Ruyues shoulder.
MO Ruyue let go of Ling Shoumos sword and raised her hand to stroke Hillghosts little head.
This little head was really slippery.
Xuanling Sect Master?
When MO Chengfeng saw Ling Shoumo, his eyes shed with surprise.
He did not expect to meet the sect master of the Xuanling Immortal Sect here.
Ling Shoumo nced at MO Chengfeng.
Naturally, he did not know MO Chengfeng.
Small people would remember big people, but big people would not remember small people.
After all, there were many small figures in this world, and only a few big figures.
MO Ruyue looked at Ling Shoumo, and the corners of her mouth curled up. Sect Master of Xuanling, take a good look. This ce is filled with people from the Demon Realm. Can you beat the three of us alone?
Although she and MO Chengfeng were suspected to be making up the numbers, they could still be considered as a force.
The mountain ghost made a fierce expression at Ling Shou MO, hissing its teeth and grinning, looking cute and fierce.
Mountain Ghost!
Ling Shoumo recognized the little thing as the Mountain Ghost.
Mountain ghosts were never easy to tame. They would rather harm themselves than associate with others.
How was this mountain ghost tamed?
Ling Shoumo looked at MO Ruyue with a dark expression.
Good eyesight. It seems you know about Mountain Ghost.
MO Ruyue praised him generously.
Ming Sihan also saw the mountain ghost on MO Ruyue!s shoulder. As expected of the woman he fancied, she was quite capable.
Even a mountain ghost could be tamed.
In fact, MO Ruyue did not think that she had tamed the mountain ghost. She had only captured its stomach.
Who asked Hillghost to be a foodie?
MO Chengfeng still did not know what was happening here. He only felt that the atmosphere was a little strange.
Demon Venerable, the Heaven-cleaving Sword is right there. Should we pull it out?
He saw the Heaven-cleaving Sword at a nce. Although it was rusted, he could feel that the sword was different from the other swords.
Of course we have to pull it out. We cant let Ling Shoumo take it away!
Ming Sihan said in front of Ling Shoumo without any fear on his face.
MO Chengfeng understood Ming Sihans meaning. He flew andnded in front of the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
He reached out and grabbed the hilt of the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Just as he tried to pull it up, he realized that he could not pull it up at all. After two or three tries, the Heaven-cleaving Sword did not budge at all.
This made MO Chengfeng feel helpless.
How could this be? Whats wrong?
Ming Sihan asked.
Mo Chengfeng returned to Ming Sihans side and said in shame, Demon
Venerable, I cant pull out the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Let me try and see how heavy this Heaven-cleaving Sword is.
Then, Ming Sihan came to the Heaven-cleaving Sword under the gazes of several pairs of eyes.
He pulled out his sword with all his might, and it was as steady as Mount Tai.
Could it be that the strength was too weak?
Therefore, Ming Sihan increased his strength, but the sword still didnt move.
Ling Shoumo sneered. This sword was born from the souls of countless immortal cultivators. How can you demonic cultivators taint it?
Only immortal cultivators could take away this Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Demons are demons, evil and crooked paths that shouldnt exist.
Ling Shoumos tone carried a hint of disdain.
These people were always so stubborn.
Ming Sihans face darkened and he said unhappily, 1 want to see how noble and righteous you cultivators are. Come and draw your sword!
Then just watch!
Ling Shoumo said and then came to the side of the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Everyone looked at Ling Shoumo to see if he could pull out the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Ling Shoumo grabbed the hilt of his sword and lifted it.
A dramatic scene appeared. The sword in Ling Shoumos hand did not move at all.
Ming Sihan couldnt help butugh out loud and said this? He shook his head and clicked his tongue sarcastically.
MO Chengfeng and MO Ruyue looked at each other andughed out loud.
Seeing how confident Ling Shoumo was, he still couldnt bring out the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
It was reallyughable.
Ling Shoumos face darkened. How could this be?
He didnt give up and continued to lift it up, but the Heaven-cleaving Sword still didnt move.
Forget it. Thats all you can do. You still look down on others.
Seizing the opportunity, he mocked her without giving her any face.
The arrogant guy could still take down the Heaven-cleaving Sword in the end.
You immortal cultivators are only so-so.
Ming Sihan was afraid that Ling Shoumo wouldnt be angry, so he continued to mock him.
Ling Shoumos face turned green and red.
He, the dignified sect master of Xuan Ling, was actually mocked by a member of the Demon Realm.
Whats there to mock? Arent you demonic cultivators also useless?
Ling Shoumo gritted his teeth. He had already tried his best, but he still could not bring out the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Ming Sihan didnt bring up the Heaven-cleaving Sword, so what right did he have to mock him?
MO Ruyue looked at the two of them and jogged over. She said to Ling
Shoumo,Move aside, let me try.
Hearing Mo Ruyues voice, Ling Shoumos eyes shed with disdain.You? Ming Sihan was unhappy to see someone ndering his disciple.
Sect Master, dont be so narrow-minded. What if my disciple can do it? He immediately said.
Is it possible for a fiendish cultivator who isnt even in the foundation establishment realm to mention the Heaven-cleaving Sword?
Ling Shoumo didnt think highly of that woman.
The woman was dressed in a ck outfit that entuated her slender waist. Her long ck hair was tied into a ponytail. She was neat and tidy, and she looked valiant. Her facial features were also exceptionally exquisite and beautiful. and there was a hint of coldness in her eyes.
Why did such a woman choose to join the demon world? And he had joined the Demon World voluntarily..
Chapter 721 - 721: This Sword Is Fated With You
Chapter 721 - 721: This Sword Is Fated With You
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
How do you know if its possible if you dont try? MO Ruyue raised her eyebrows slightly.
Vaguely, she felt that she had the aura of a protagonist.
With the Heaven-cleaving Sword in her hand, MO Ruyue lifted it up.
With a swoosh, the Heaven-cleaving Sword was easily taken out by MO Ruyue.
This was the highlight of MO Ruyue!s life.
She did not expect that the Heaven-cleaving Sword would really be pulled out by her.
Was he lucky enough to buy a lottery ticket?
Of course, there was no lottery in this era.
A few pairs of eyes stared at MO Ruyue.
Shock and doubt shed in their eyes.
MO Ruyue raised the Heaven-cleaving Sword in her hand.
Look, this is the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
MO Ruyue said loudly.
The shock in MO Chengfengs eyes turned into joy.
Ruyue, youre so powerful. How did you pull out the Heaven-cleaving Sword?
He couldnt use any strength before.
He did not expect Ru Yue to bring up the Heaven-cleaving Sword so quickly.
Its so unexpected that Im in a state of shock.
MO Ruyues eyes were nk. He pulled it out just like that? she said. Im curious too.
However, the Heaven-cleaving Sword was covered in rust, and it was impossible to tell that it was a good sword.
It seems that the Heaven-cleaving Sword doesnt look at whether its an immortal cultivator or a demon cultivator, but at people. Xuanling Sect Master, is what I said right?
Ming Sihan said faintly.
Ling Shoumos face must be hurting right now, right?
What he said earlier was quite dignified. He thought that the Heaven-cleaving Sword would really be pulled out by this guy!
In the end, it was nothing!
Seeing MO Ruyue pull out the Heaven-cleaving Sword, Ming Sihan felt a little proud.
This disciple of his made the underling very satisfied.
Ling Shoumo clenched his fists in his sleeves.
Where did this womane from?
Who can prove that this sword is the Heaven-cleaving Sword?
Ling Shoumo nced at the sword. It was all rusted and could not be seen at all.
Was this sword really the Heaven-cleaving Sword?
MO Ruyue touched the sword and said,Youll know once you get back and grind the rust off.
What a simple matter.
Then, MO Ruyue added, You Immortal Cultivators are just so-so.
Ling Shoumos face suddenly darkened.
A mere Aura Refining cultivator dared to speak arrogantly to a Nascent Soul cultivator like him!
He had to teach this woman a lesson.
An invisible force attacked MO Ruyue.
Ling Shoumo didnt want to kill that woman. He just wanted to teach her a lesson, so he didnt use much force.
However, it was easily resolved by Ming Sihan.
Ming Sihan pulled MO Ruyue to his side. His eyes were unhappy as he said coldly, Why? The open and aboveboard Xuanling Celestial Sects sect leader actually learned how to stab people in the back?
MO Ruyue finally reacted. Ling Shoumo actually attacked her?
As expected, the immortal sects are all sanctimonious fellows.
At this moment, the rust on the Heaven-cleaving Sword in MO Ruyues hand fell off, revealing its golden de. The dazzling light was extremely dazzling.
The true face of the Heaven-cleaving Sword was revealed.
Mo Ruyues face was full of surprise and joy. This protagonist halo was too useful.
Ling Shoumo stared at the Heaven-cleaving Sword. He never expected that the Heaven-cleaving Sword would choose a woman who cultivated the Devil Dao.
MO Ruyue felt that Ling Shoumo was a little too much to y around with.
She hated this immortal sect master even more.
At this moment, the guardian beast came over.
Everyone was shocked.
Ming Sihan nodded slightly, nced at Ling Shoumo and said wrong? Didnt the Xuanling Sect Master defeat the guardian beast just now?
l thought the sect master of Xuanling Sect was so powerful that he could actually deal with the guardian beast.
Looks like I have overestimated you.
MO Ruyue was impressed by the number one entric person.
This tone, coupled with the disdainful expression, was really amazing.
Disdain was written all over his face and on his lips.
Only Ming Sihan would dare to do this, right?
Anyway, she didnt dare to do so. She was too weak now. When her strength caught up in the future, she would dare to do so.
The guardian beast roared and approached them step by step.
The ground shook violently.
MO Chengfeng had already gripped the silver bone fracture fan in his hand tightly, ready to attack at any moment.
Ling Shoumo was the first to take the brunt and flew over, his movement technique as elegant as the wind.
Each move carried great power.
However, the guardian beasts skin was too thick and hard, so it was unable to hurt the guardian beasts skin.
Master, should we go up too?
MO Ruyues expression was grave as she gripped her Heaven-cleaving Sword tightly.
There was a trace of coldness in her eyes. She became serious and put away her usual cynicism.
He held the Ghost Sense in his left hand and the Heaven-cleaving Sword in his right.
It was ready to go.
Theres no hurry. Hes so capable, so let him deal with it. With someone to cover our backs, why not? Lets go.
Ming Sihan smiled yfully. He would let Ling Shoumo and the guardian beast have a good time, He would not apany them.
After saying that, Ming Sihan prepared to fly away.
However, he remembered that he needed to fly over the Jiuqu Sandstone River, so he turned to MO Ruyue and said,Why arent you following me?
Master?
MO Ruyues eyes shed with confusion.
Ming Sihan naturally hugged MO Ruyues waist and flew into the air.
If this venerable self didnt take you away, would you be able to fly over the
Nine Tune Sand River on your own?
Ming Sihan exined.
The only reason he did this was to take MO Ruyue away from here.
Who asked MO Ruyue to be so weak now?
MO Ruyue did not know how to appreciate his kindness and even without Master doing it personally, Senior Brother MO could have taken me away.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Ming Sihans expression darkened.
He said faintly, So you think Im inferior to MO Chengfeng?
There was a hint of coldness in his voice.
No, no, thats not what I meant. I just dont dare to trouble Master.
MO Ruyue looked at the mans slightly protruding Adams apple and blushed.
This man looked so handsome from bottom to top.
Unfortunately, he was a ruthless demon.
She didnt dare to have any other fantasies about the Demon Lord.
He did not want to fall into a bottomless abyss.
After hearing MO Ruyues exnation, Ming Sihans expression became much better.
MO Chengfeng looked at MO Ruyue in the Demon Venerables arms and felt a little upset.
He followed behind without saying a word.
They had finally left this ce, and the Heaven-cleaving Sword was already in
MO Ruyues hands.
As for Ling Shoumo, MO Ruyue did not care.
She didnt see Ling Shoumo caring about her when she was in Xuanling Immortal Sect, so why would she care about him now?
She didnt owe Ling Shoumo anything.
Master, the task you gave me has beenpleted. This sword is dedicated to
Master.
MO Ruyue presented the Heaven-cleaving Sword with both hands.
Although she was the one who pulled it out, it was for her master.
Ming Sihan nced at the Heaven-cleaving Sword in MO Ruyues hand. There was no greed in his dark eyes, only indifference.
This sword is fated with you. You can take it yourself.
This sword seemed to have decided on MO Ruyue as its master.
He and Ling Shoumo had exhausted all their strength, but they were still unable to pull out the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Yet, MO Ruyue easily pulled it out. Wasnt this enough to prove the problem?
However, I already have the ghost thoughts. This sword is really unnecessary.
Her left hand was still not very good at using a sword.
The Heaven-cleaving Sword was indeed beautiful. Its entire body emitted a golden light, like the golden light of an angel of justice descending.
Ghost thoughts were the exact opposite of Heaven-cleaving Swords.
The ghost thoughts body was covered in ck-purple light, filled with evil energy.
Other than the sword, she also had a brick.
He had too many weapons on him..
Chapter 722 - 722: Intreatable Disease?
Chapter 722 - 722: Intreatable Disease?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Whats extra? Ghost thoughts are ghost thoughts, Heaven Severing is Heaven Severing, just keep it.
He was not able to pull out the Heaven-cleaving Sword, which meant that he was indeed not fated.
He naturally wouldnt ept things that werent fated with him.
He sized up MO Ruyue. It was necessary to properly nurture this disciple of his.
Mo Ruyue thought for a moment, then handed the ghost to Ming Sihan and said, Then master, Ill return the ghost thought to you first. It would be embarrassing if she took two swords by herself.
They were both rather good swords.
If ones strength was insufficient, they would have to rely on equipment to make up for it. Wasnt this the kind of person she was talking about?
With the strength of the Aura Refining realm, the Ghost Will in her left hand and the Heaven ying in her right hand, those Golden Core cultivators would probably be envious and jealous of her.
It couldnt be helped. Who asked her to have a big halo as the main character? How can I take back a gift that I have given? Are you looking down on me? She actually returned the gift that he had given her. What did she mean?
Ming Sihan was unhappy.
Im not looking down on Master. I just think that giving two swords to a trash like me with low strength is a little overkill, dont you think?
MO Ruyue hurriedly exined. She couldnt bear Masters love.
However, Ming Sihan did not think much of it. He said my disciple, the saintess of the demon world. How can you use two good swords?
Youre worthy!
Your low strength is only temporary. Under my cultivation, you will be the most powerful woman!
Since the Demon Venerable had already said so much, MO Ruyue would not know what was good for her if she refused.
Therefore, she immediately knelt down and cupped her fists in front of her, saying gratefully, Thank you for your nurturing, Master.
Get up.
Ming Sihan felt a little gratified when he saw MO Ruyue being so grateful.
MO Ruyue stood up with a sword in her left hand and a sword in her right hand. Should she change her title to Dual Sword Style Saintess YYDPS?
Hillghost didnt understand what was happening. His round eyes were filled with questions.
MO Chengfeng remained silent because he didnt know what to say.
The Demon Venerable had the intention to nurture Ruyue, which had its pros and cons.
Overall, the advantages outweighed the disadvantages.
As long as Ruyues strength increased, she would be able to protect herself. It would not be so easy for others to hurt Ruyue again.
In fact, he had never understood why the demon lord treated Ruyue so specially.
There had always been two saintesses in the past, and the demon lord had been very harsh and ruthless to the saintesses.
It was only until Ruyue became the Holy Maiden that the Demon Venerable seemed to have changed into apletely different person.
They left Si Water and met some immortal cultivators who were looking for the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
MO Ruyue didnt want to return to the demon world so soon, so she fawned over Ming Sihan and said,Master, are you hungry? Why dont we stay in this city for the night? Wait until tomorrow morning to leave?
Ordinary people did not know the Demon Lord of the Demon World at all.
Even if they did not need to disguise themselves, they could still swagger through the bustling streets.
Who would have known that the legendary Demon Lord was actually such a handsome man?
Master, I heard that there arenterns here at night. Its not easy for us toe here, so why dont we
MO Ruyue saw that Ming Sihan didnt speak and continued to persuade him. She was determined to take Ming Sihan down today.
Afterpleting the mission, he should have fun and rx.
The original two swords were crossed on her back. When she needed to use them, she could just pull them out.
MO Chengfeng followed behind them like an invisible person.
If Ruyue had begged him to do so, he would have agreed long ago.
However, the Demon Venerable was different. The Demon Venerable was not him.
Master
MO Ruyue felt like her saliva was about to dry up.
However, this man was still indifferent.
What could he do to make her agree?
This mans heart value for her was 15 points, and she had to admit that it was increasing too slowly.
If she didntplete the current mission, she wouldnt be able toplete the next mission.
He couldnt get the reward from the Salted Fish System.
Could it be that her strategy was wrong?
Mo Ruyue began to doubt herself.
Other people were able to conquer their targets very quickly, so why was she so slow?
Master, my stomach hurts so much. I cant go any further.Mo Ruyue suddenly hugged her stomach and squatted down, revealing a pained expression. She continued,Master, find an inn and rest for the night. Maybe youll be fine tomorrow.
Ming Sihan looked down at MO Ruyue who was squatting on the ground and stomach hurts. Shouldnt we go to the clinic? Why are you going to the inn?
MO Chengfeng squatted down worriedly and held MO Ruyues shoulder. Ruyue, does your stomach hurt badly?
The mountain ghosts surrounded MO Yue. What was wrong with their master?
MO Ruyue gasped. Senior Brother MO, my stomach hurts. I cant walk anymore.
Ill take you to the clinic to see a doctor now.
As he spoke, MO Chengfeng carried MO Ruyue up nervously.
Ming Sihan looked at this scene and snatched MO Ruyue from MO Chengfengs arms. He said coldly to MO Chengfeng,Leave this matter to me.
He cared about his own disciple. Since when was it someone elses turn to interfere?
However, this woman was too light!
Was there no food to eat in the Demon Realm? He was so light.
Ming Sihan frowned slightly.
MO Ruyue grabbed Ming Sihans clothes and said,Master, you dont have to take me to the clinic. Ill just stay in the inn and rest.
Are you sure?
Of course Im sure. Actually, it hurts for a few days every month. Theres no need for a doctor to treat it.
MO Ruyue was already in the outfit, and her aunt hadnt arrived this month.
In this era, although it was not as good as modern times when it came to aunts, it was still okay. There were womens special menstrual wear.
Moreover, the one she used had been modified by herself. It was made of clean cotton and was a one-time use.
Theres no need for a doctor to treat it. Is it an incurable disease?
Its more or less the same.
The straight man, Ming Sihan, had a head full of question marks. He said,What do you mean by Moon Letter?
Do you know about tenth water?
I dont understand.
Ming Sihan shook his head. This was the first time he had heard of this thing.
Was it very powerful?
Mo Ruyue was speechless.
Actually, he wasnt to me.
In this era, women were more shy. Who would tell a man about her aunt?
Most men who had never experienced sex would not know.
Even if some men were married and had children, as long as their wives didnt say anything, they probably wouldnt understand.
He turned to MO Chengfeng and asked,Mo Chengfeng, do you understand
Yue Xin?
He did not believe that MO Chengfeng would understand.
MO Chengfeng looked at MO Ruyue who was in Ming Sihans arms. His face turned red and he said,After a woman matures, she will send a monthly letter every month. Each monthly letter willst for about four to five days. These few days are when a woman is at her weakest. Her abdomen will hurt and there will be cases of fainting.
How did you know?
Ming Sihan thought to himself,How did MO Chengfeng know something that even I dont know?
He didnt expect a woman to have such a strange thing.
Ive read about it in books before.
MO Chengfeng exined. The Demon Lord wouldnt treat him as a pervert, right?
It was true that ordinary men did not know about such things..
Chapter 723 - 723: Drink It While It’s Hot
Chapter 723 - 723: Drink It While Its Hot
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ming Sihan stopped in his tracks and asked,Do we still need to go to the clinic?
In this aspect, he really did not know anything.
Seeing that MO Chengfeng was actually stronger than him in this aspect, he was somewhat unconvinced in his heart.
Why dont we find an inn to settle down and rest first? There was not much use in looking for a doctor.
MO Chengfeng suggested.
He didnt know if Ruyue had sent a letter, but he knew that she really wanted to stay and y.
MO Ruyues eyes instantly lit up when she heard MO Chengfengs words. It was her senior brother who understood her.
She pretended to be weak and said,Master, Senior Brother MO is right. I just need a good rest.
Then find an inn and stay to rest.
Ming Sihan finallypromised.
MO Ruyue finally closed her eyes peacefully and pretended to rest.
There was still some time before night. At night, she had to go to the Treasure Gathering Pavilion to buy things and then go to light thenterns.
She had more wishes, and she needed to light morenterns to fulfill her wishes.
However, there were only two empty rooms left in the inn. Because Fu City was about to hold an Alchemy Competition, many alchemists came to Fu City to show their skills.
As long as one could achieve good results in the alchemypetition, they would have a chance to be noticed by the elders of the Spirit Pill Sect. At that time, they would be invited to the Spirit Pill Sect to learn more powerful alchemy techniques.
Therefore, countless alchemists would fight to the death to go to the Spirit Pill Sect to learn the top alchemy skills.
Almost all the guests in Fu City Inn came for the Alchemy Convention. Everyone wanted to enter the Spirit Pill Sect.
Master, why dont you take a room for yourself? Ill just squeeze in with Senior Brother Mo.
Look at how considerate she was for her master.
Mo Ruyue was still in Ming Sihans arms.
It wasnt that she didnt want toe down, but that this man didnt want to let go at all.
Mo Chengfeng was also very happy to share a room with MO Ruyue. Ruyue hade to the Yue family and needed to be taken good care of.
Master, Ru Yues suggestion is not bad. Your subordinate and Ru Yue have a room, and you have a room. Is that okay?
When there were people around, MO Chengfeng would also specially change the word Demon Venerable to Master.
It was easy for people to be afraid of the Demon Venerable.
After all, the Demon Lord was a bit of a clean freak, so it was not good for Ruyue to share a room with him.
What if Ruyue identally angered the Demon Venerable?
Therefore, for the Demon Lord and Ruyue, it was better to let Ruyue stay in the same room as him.
At most, Ruyue would sleep on the bed and he would sleep on the floor.
He couldnt possibly let Ruyue sleep in the same room as the Demon Venerable, while the Demon Venerable slept on the bed and Ruyue slept on the floor, right?
Ruyue would catch a cold easily if she slept on the floor.
It was impossible for the Demon Lord to sleep on the floor.
Could it be that he had to share a room with the Demon Lord? Thats too Nonsense!
Before the demon could speak, Mo Ruyue said, I think its okay!
No!
Ming Sihan said coldly.
This made both MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng look puzzled.
Was there something wrong with this?
Master, what do you think is wrong?
MO Ruyue blinked and stayed in Ming Sihans arms, not daring to move. She was afraid that Ming Sihan would throw her out if she moved too much.
Why should I listen to your arrangements?
Ming Sihans face was dark. He was a demon lord, why would he need to be arranged by his own subordinates?
He was very dissatisfied with this arrangement.
MO Chengfeng and MO Ru Yue were stunned.
She didnt expect Ming Sihan to be unhappy because of this.
MO Ruyue immediately said, Then well follow Masters arrangements. Senior Brother MO and I will listen to Masters arrangements.
Is this alright?
She thought to herself.
This man was really
s, she couldnt find the right adjective. MO Ruyue felt depressed.
She was at a loss for words.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Ming Sihans expression improved.
This kind of thing should have been arranged by him, shouldnt it?
MO Chengfeng didnt say anything else. If the Demon Lord made the
arrangements, then so be it.
He wanted to see what the Demon Lord would do.
Ming Sihan nced at MO Ruyue, who was in his arms, and his dark red eyes night, you will stay in one room with your master, and the other room will be for MO Chengfeng.
Is this good?
MO Ruyue raised her eyebrows slightly. Wouldnt it be difficult to stay in the same room as Ming Sihan?
Would she still have the chance to go out and y? He felt that his n was about to be ruined.
Are you dissatisfied?
Ming Sihan narrowed his eyes, giving off a dangerous aura.
Mo Ruyue gulped. Master was a little scary!
No, no, but its up to Master.
She could only admit defeat.
Could it be that he could still follow his master?
He didnt have the strength yet, so he didnt want to argue.
It was not easy for her to get that little Temptation Point. She did not want to lose it all by herself.
Therefore, he had to cooperate with his master as much as possible.
Ill listen to my masters decision.
Mo Chengfeng said obediently.
He was a little worried that the Demon Lord would not be able to take good care of Ruyue. After all, the Demon Lord did not even know what a moon letter was.
How could he count on the demon lord to take care of Ruyue?
Why would a Demon Venerable lower himself to take care of Ruyue?
Thinking of this, MO Chengfeng sighed in his heart.
After they booked the rooms, they went back to their own rooms.
Hillghost was also with MO Chengfeng.
Ming Sihan kicked the door open and carried MO Ruyue to the bed.
Master, please put me down. Im not that weak yet.
MO Ruyue struggled for a moment. She was already back in her room. Could she put it down now?
Her bones were aching.
The flesh on this mans body was too hard and not soft at all.
Are you so eager to leave me?
MO Ruyue stared nkly at Ming Sihan.
She didnt quite understand what Ming Sihan meant.
Was Ming Sihan addicted to hugging her?
She thought about it and said, Then, Master, do you want to continue hugging me?
Why couldnt she understand what this man was thinking?
What did this mean?
It was strange.
Ming Sihan still ced her on the bed and said,You should lie down. MO Ruyue opened her mouth, but she was speechless for a moment.
She sat up and quickly said,Master, why dont you sleep on the bed tonight and Ill sleep on the floor?
Theres no need. Just lie on the bed at night and meditate.
Ming Sihan rejected him. He was a grown man, and he wasnt that weak.
Not resting at night did not affect him much. At this moment, someone knocked on the door.
Come in.
Ming Sihan looked at the door.
MO Chengfeng came in from outside, and he seemed to be holding something in his hand.
Ruyue, drink some brown sugar water. Its good for your body.
Thank you, Eldest Senior Brother.
Although MO Ruyue didnt need it, she was still touched by Eldest Senior Brothers concern for her.
If it were those senior brothers of Xuanling Immortal Sect, they would not pay attention to her.
MO Chengfeng ced the brown sugar water on the table and nodded at Ming
Sihan.Demon Venerable, this subordinate will take his leave first.
Ming Sihans eyes were calm, and no one could tell whether he was happy or angry.
When he reached the door, MO Chengfeng stopped and turned to MO Ruyue.Ruyue, you must drink it while its hot.
Alright, Senior Brother.
Mo Ruyue got off the bed and watched MO Chengfeng leave.
He had to take a sip of the brown sugar water on the table.
MO Chengfengs goodwill was not in vain..
Chapter 724 - 724: Master Is Jealous?
Chapter 724 - 724: Master Is Jealous?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Yue Xin, do you have to drink this?
Ming Sihan, who had been silent for a long time, suddenly spoke.
His eyes were fixed on the bowl of brown sugar water in MO Ruyues hands.
MO Ruyue smiled. You can choose not to drink it, but its better than nothing.
Its good for sugar and water.
Just treat it as drinking hot water.
Drinking hot water was good for ones health.
You have a good rtionship with MO Chengfeng, right?
Ming Sihan asked. It was so nice that he felt a little ufortable.
MO Ruyue looked at Ming Sihan hesitantly. Why did she feel that there was something wrong with this mans tone?
Thinking about it carefully, his subordinates had a good rtionship and would be more united. Shouldnt this be a good thing for the Demon Realm?
If everyone worked together, they would be able to cut through metal.
Those who wanted to split the Demon Realm would not be able to do so so easily.
Thus, MO Ruyue said,Senior Brother MO and I have a very good rtionship. Moreover, our tacit understanding and cooperation are also very good. Its very easy for us toplete any mission.
The more she said that, the more she felt that Ming Sihans expression became darker.
Was she wrong?
Ming Sihan closed his eyes and suppressed the unhappiness in his heart.
This woman was clearly his disciple, yet she was no match for MO Chengfeng. Was he not good enough to her?
He had really taught a white-eyed wolf.
Perhaps in her eyes, MO Chengfeng must be more important than him.
MO Ruyue didnt dare to continue speaking. She felt that her master was angry.
She thought back to what she had said earlier. There didnt seem to be anything wrong.
No matter how much he thought about it, he was puzzled. Where did he go wrong?
The sky outside gradually darkened. MO Ruyues heart had already f10ievn outside.
He touched the Spirit Grass in his pocket. A thousand taels of silver was also money!
She nced at Ming Sihan, who was meditating at the side, and quietly walked to the window. She pushed open the window and looked at the peopleing and going outside. The entire street was lit up bynterns.
It was too beautiful.
A few lines of poetry immediately appeared in his mind.
The eastern night blooms a thousand trees. The wind blew down, the stars fell like rain, and the fragrance of BMW carved cars filled the road Everyone searched for him thousands of times, but when they looked back, that person was in the dim light.
The poems written by the ancients were so artistic.
And she liked thest few sentences the most.
MO Ruyue felt that she would never be able to reach that height in this lifetime.
He only knew how to say f * ck, go to the world.
MO Ruyues heart was filled with emotion at this moment.
Why open the window?
At this moment, a voice sounded in his ear.
MO Ruyue was so frightened that her hair stood on end.
She turned her head and saw that her master was already standing beside her.
She was too intoxicated just now and only cared about admiring the beautiful scenery. She did not notice that there was someone beside her.
Look, look outside.
Her auntie had not arrived yet, but she was shocked. She felt that her auntie was about toe out.
Ming Sihan prepared to close the window.
However, MO Ruyue blocked him and said,Master, dont close the window.
Lets get some fresh air.
You cant catch a cold.
Ming Sihans tone was cold.
But if you dont breathe well, youll get sick.
MO Ruyue turned around and raised her head slightly to look at the man who was as handsome as a god.
This man was so f * cking good-looking, and he was actually her master. Who knew which woman would benefit from this in the future?
Master, I want to get some wind. Let me blow.
Her eyes were filled with desire.
Ming Sihan wanted to reject her directly, but when he looked at her clear eyes and her long eyshes that were like butterflies, he was moved.
When youre done, close the window.
Then, he turned around and covered his chest with his palm.
Whats going on? There seems to be something wrong with my chest.
She couldnt help but think of that pair of eyes that were like a stream.
Why was MO Ruyues eyes so good-looking? She said that she was pure, but there was a hint of enchantment in them.
Seeing that her Master had agreed to her request, MO Ruyue rolled her eyes.
As soon as Ming Sihan sat down, she poured him a cup of hot tea.
The hot tea was steaming. It had just been boiled not long ago.
Master, please have some tea.
MO Ruyue carried the tea over with a smile on her face.
Do you have something to say?
This woman was too obvious. He could see through her at a nce.
Mo Ruyue also spoke very straightforwardly,Master, can I go out and y?Whats fun outside?
Its fun outside. Master, please, Ill be back early.
MO Ruyue put her palms together and begged.
It was not good to have a master. He had to report to his master wherever he went.
Other than that, everything else seemed to be fine.
Are you going alone?
If he was brought along, he could reluctantly agree to MO Ruyues request.
After all, he was so powerful that he would definitely be able to protect MO Ruyue if they encountered any danger.
Ming Sihan thought proudly in his heart.
Master, I know that you are worried about me being alone, so I am going to ask Senior Brother MO to go out and y together.
MO Ruyue had an expression that said, Dont worry, I have someone to protect me.
Actually, she didnt need MO Chengfengs protection at all. She had a lot of equipment, and it would scare people to death if she took it out.
She had Ghost Sense in one hand, Heaven sh in the other, and a board. If she really couldnt do it, she still had her Heavenly Retribution Experience Card, right?
She had many ways to protect herself.
However, after she finished speaking, Ming Sihan immediately objected and scolded not allowed to go out.
He called out to MO Chengfeng.
Senior Brother MO?
He called her so intimately!
Did she still remember who her master was?
Ming Sihan was full of disdain!
Master
MO Ruyue looked dejected.
Why is Master like this?
It seemed that whenever he mentioned Senior Brother MO, his masters expression would not be too good.
Could Master be jealous?
Mo Ruyue thought for a moment and asked tentatively,Master, why dont you apany me out to y? With her master by her side, she felt safer than Senior Brother MO!
In fact, she was not confident.
In order to get out, he could only try this method.
Is what you said true?
Ming Sihan stared at MO Ruyue. This womans words were quite pleasant to hear.
He just didnt know if she was telling the truth or not.
This must be the truth. Master, your cultivation is so high, and Senior Brother MO is so high. Theres a huge difference. Of course, Master gives you a greater sense of security.
MO Ruyue made an exaggerated gesture.
Although this was a little unkind to Senior Brother MO, she was not lying.
It was fine to offend someone behind their back, as long as he didnt say that in front of Senior Brother Mo.
Otherwise, it would be very easy to offend people.
Master, you can go with me. We can lightnterns tonight. 1 have to pray for
Master.
Alright, lets go.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Ming Sihan felt much happier.
This woman knew what was going on.
Was he not stronger than MO Chengfeng?
Thus, the two of them left.
As soon as he went downstairs, he saw MO Chengfeng and Hillghost.
MO Chengfeng knew that Ruyue would definitely find a way to leave the house, but he did not expect her to bring the Demon Venerable along.
This surprised him.
The demon didnt seem to like the hustle and bustle outside.
Why would he go out with Ruyue?
Chapter 725 - 725: I’ll Bring You Out for Dinner
Chapter 725 - 725: Ill Bring You Out for Dinner
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Senior Brother MO!
When MO Ruyue saw MO Chengfeng, she quickly greeted him warmly. When Hillghost saw MO Ruyue, he jumped onto her shoulder.
Ruyue.
Mo Chengfeng also shouted. His gaze fell on Ming Sihan and he asked in a low voice, Master is also going out?
Anyway, I have nothing to do. It doesnt matter if I go out and take a look.
Ming Sihan replied indifferently.
Was MO Chengfeng waiting for Ruyue downstairs?
It seemed that he had to issue an order when he returned. He absolutely did not allow his subordinates to fall in love in the Demon Realm!
They had entered the Devil World to focus on the cultivation of the Devil World. How could they waste time by talking about love?
He could increase his cultivation by quite a bit just by talking about love!
Therefore, the three of them went out together and walked in the bustling city of Fu City.
MO Ruyue did not buy anything. Instead, she looked around. Her goal was not to go shopping, but to find Treasure Trove Pavilion.
Finally, MO Ruyue saw the Treasure Trove Pavilion, and her face was instantly filled with smiles.
The business of the Treasure Gathering Pavilion seemed to be quite good.
After all, the pill refiningpetition was about to begin. Everyone would be at the Treasure Gathering Pavilion to see if there were any treasures that could be used during thepetition.
Or if they had any treasures that they needed to sell, they could also take a look at the Treasure Gathering Pavilion. They might even be able to sell them for a good price.
Its so lively up ahead. Lets go over there and take a look? MO Ruyue stopped in her tracks and turned to Ming Sihan.
His eyes were filled with light.
MO Chengfeng looked ahead and realized that it was actually the Treasure Gathering Pavilion. He already knew what MO Ruyue was going to do. Junior Sister wants to go to Treasure Gathering Pavilion to sell things again, right?
Lets go take a look.
Ming Sihan agreed immediately. He was a little disgusted by the people around him.
asionally, he would be bumped into by others, which made him feel very unhappy.
Did those people not have eyes?
He didnt even apologize.
MO Ruyues footsteps were a little fast. Her figure was as lively as a fish.
Thus, Ming Sihan grabbed MO Ruyues wrist and said coldly, Slow down.
It was too fast for him to keep up.
Master, whats wrong?
MO Ruyue looked at Ming Sihans hand in confusion.
This pulling and pulling isnt good, right?
However, seeing that Ming Sihans eyes were clear and he didnt seem to have any other thoughts, she felt relieved.
He only asked her to walk slowly, but her thoughts were a little unnecessary.
MO Chengfeng watched this scene silently. The demon held Ruyues wrist!
This
Looking at the mans back, MO Chengfengs deep gaze became deep.
Could it be that the Demon Lord likes Ruyue?
Ever since he returned from finding the Heaven-cleaving Sword, the Demon Lords behavior was not quite right. It should not be the behavior that the Demon Lord should have.
To be honest, he didnt know much about the Devil Generals.
This man was temperamental and his methods were fierce. He looked like a person who was not easy to approach.
After thinking for a while, MO Chengfeng still followed.
Because Ming Sihan was holding her wrist, MO Ruyue did not dare to leave.
Her face was a little hot. The temperature of this mans hand was a little hot.
Is this where you came from?
Ming Sihan raised his head and looked at the que. There were three golden words written on it.
There were all kinds of peopleing and going here.
MO Ruyue quietly withdrew her hand. She listened to Ming Sihans words and nodded,Master, I heard that there are many treasures inside. Letse here and take a look.
With that, she went in first.
Ming Sihan followed closely behind. He wasnt interested in anything in the Treasure Gathering Pavilion.
He felt that there were many people here.
MO Ruyue looked around and touched the Spirit Grass in her pocket.
Touching the Spirit Grass was like touching her thousand taels of silver.
She thought of something and turned back to look at MO Chengfeng.Senior Brother Mo.
She blinked at Senior Brother Mo.
In this aspect, Senior Brother MO was considered an expert. With an expert by his side, he would not be cheated.
MO Chengfeng immediately came to MO Ruyues side.
Junior Sister?
Ill leave the trade of the Spirit Grass to you.
As she spoke, MO Ruyue passed the Spirit Grass to MO Chengfeng.
Ming Sihan watched everything unfold. He looked indifferent, but there was a wave in his heart.
After MO Chengfeng left, Ming Sihan said,What did you ask MO Chengfeng to do?
Let senior brother help me sell the Spirit Grass. If I go alone, Im afraid Ill be scammed.
MO Ruyue turned around and patiently exined to Ming Sihan.
At the end, he added, Master, when I get the money, Ill treat you to a meal.
Are you already so poor?
Ming Sihan raised his eyebrows slightly. Was this woman not rich enough?
He actually wanted to buy things to exchange for money.
MO Ruyue smiled awkwardly. Well, Im not poor. No one wouldin about having too much money. Dont you love money, Master?
l dont like it.
Ming Sihan snorted.
Money was dispensable to him.
Its all because you have a lot of money, Master, so youre already numb to money.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but roll her eyes.
If he didnt love money, was he still human?
Ming Sihan was silent, as if he had tacitly agreed.
If one was too rich, one would indeed have no concept of money.
Not long after, MO Chengfeng returned with a banknote worth one thousand taels.
Ruyue, here. The Spirit Grass was sold for a thousand taels.
Mo Chengfeng handed the banknote to Mo Ruyue.
A thousand taels was not a small amount.
MO Ruyue was holding a banknote worth one thousand taels of silver. For this one thousand taels of silver, the two immortal sects had fought each other.
Sorry to trouble you, Senior Brother.
Holding the banknote in her hand, she continued,Senior Brother, let me treat you to a meal.
Did Ruyue cook it herself? If it was Ruyues cooking, then he could try it.
MO Chengfengs eyes were filled with anticipation. He still liked to eat dishes made by Ruyue.
He still had a lingering taste of what he had eaten back then.
That taste was unprecedentedly delicious.
That might have to wait until we return to the Demon Realm before it can be realized.
MO Ruyue smiled dryly. Why did he like her cooking?
Actually, she didnt like cooking.
However, how could she reject Senior Brother Mo s help?
Its okay. Theres still a long time. I can wait slowly.
MO Chengfengs eyes were filled with a smile. As long as he could eat Ruyues cooking, there was no harm in waiting.
Ming Sihan looked at the two of them talking to each other, and his chest felt a little stuffy.
Im hungry!
He interrupted their conversation.
He sessfully attracted MO Ruyues attention.
Master, Ill take you to eat.
MO Ruyue said happily. With money, her mood would improve. Ming Sihan walked out and ignored the people behind him.
Senior brother, lets hurry up and follow.
Alright.
MO Chengfeng nodded and watched as MO Ruyue chased after the Demon Venerable.
He muttered softly, Youre a Nascent Soul cultivator. How can you be hungry?
Without thinking much, MO Chengfeng quickly followed.
Ming Sihan walked into the restaurant of the n.
Sir, pleasee in. The waiter invited warmly. The best private room on the second floor.
Ming Sihan said and the waiter instantly understood.
The waiter enthusiastically said,Sir, please sit on the second floor.
There were two waiters in the best private room on the second floor.
Ming Sihan didnt even listen to the waiter and said directly,Bring out the most expensive and best dishes here.
Alright, please wait a moment.
The waiter left the room, leaving only Mo Ruyue and the other two..
Chapter 726 - 726: Depressed
Chapter 726 - 726: Depressed
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue looked around and found that the decoration here was not bad.
She believed that one thousand taels was more than enough to spend here.
At most, it would cost three to four hundred taels. How expensive could it be?
There werent many people in this restaurant, and it was obvious that business wasnt good.
Mo Chengfeng looked at Mo Ruyue sympathetically and even secretly winked at her.
But MO Ruyue didnt understand.
Ming Sihan was in a good mood as he drank his tea. When he saw MO Chengfeng giving him a look, he whispered, MO Chengfeng, what happened to your eyes?
MO Chengfeng rubbed his eyes awkwardly and said, Maybe theres something in my eyes.
Enter things? Let me see?
MO Ruyue stood up and walked towards MO Chengfeng.
She looked at MO Chengfengs eyes up close. Senior Brother MO, dont move. Ill blow on your eyes. Itll be fine after a little.
MO Chengfeng felt his body stiffen. Ruyue was too close to him, and there was even a demon staring at her.
MO Ruyue blew at it. How is it? Do your eyes feel better? she asked.
Yes, good, much better.
There was nothing wrong with his eyes. He just wanted to remind Ruyue to take it easy.
But it seemed toote now.
Ruyue was going to bleed out this time.
The demon lord would definitely make Ruyue understand the viciousness of human hearts.
Thats good.
MO Ruyue returned to her seat.
Not long after, the waiter served the dishes.
Garlic Steamed Sea Shrimp, Garlic Scallop, Peach Blossom Meat
One dish after another was served on the table, and the entire table was filled with dishes.
Looking at the lobster on the te that was bigger than a fist, MO Ruyue subconsciously swallowed her saliva.
It looked delicious.
There was also a whole fish with some chopped green onions on it.
The delicious scallops were topped with minced garlic, emitting an alluring fragrance.
She had never eaten such a big lobster in the modern world.
Master, you eat first.
MO Ruyue looked at Ming Sihan and asked her master to start eating first.
This was the greatest respect for his master.
Ming Sihan was not in a hurry. Instead, he said to the waiter beside him,Bring three jars of your best wine.
Alright.
The waiter replied.
There was no doubt that the best was the most expensive.
I dont need to, I dont really know how to drink, MO Ruyue replied.
l dont need it either.
MO Chengfeng said as he followed behind MO Ruyue.
If he could help Ruyue save some money, he would save some money. The wine here was not cheap either!
The waiter paused and looked at Ming Sihan. Sir, is one jar enough?
l can finish three jars. Ming Sihan smiled faintly. Alright.
The waiter left to get the wine.
MO Ruyue saw Ming Sihan move his chopsticks and reached out to take the scallop. She smiled and said,Master, 1 didnt expect you to be a drunkard.
No wine, no joy.
Ming Sihan elegantly ate the dishes on the table. There were more than twenty dishes, and he only took a sip of each dish.
After the wine was served, he started drinking. MO Ruyue ate almost every dish and was soon full.
l want to drink too.
As he spoke, he poured himself a small cup.
After taking a sip, her delicate features instantly contorted.
How exciting.
She didnt continue drinking, but chose to continue eating.
After they finished eating, they could go and light up thenterns.
After they had their fill, MO Ruyue stood up and said,Master, Senior Brother, wait here. Ill go settle the bill! Ruyue, shall I go with you?
Sure,
MO Ruyue agreed. She thought that Senior Brother MO would definitely not like to share a room with the Demon Venerable.
She kindly brought MO Chengfeng to her side.
The two of them went downstairs and prepared to pay the bill.
The shopkeeper did some calctions. Its a total of three thousand taels.
Who will pay?
Hearing this number, MO Chengfeng had a look of expectation.
MO Ruyue was stunned. Her gaze fell on the ount book. Shopkeeper, do the calctions again. Did you make a mistake?
Three thousand taels? Thats impossible, right?
Miss, I didnt calcte it wrong. Its a total of 3,020 taels. If you order 20 taels more, Ill give you the price of each dish.
The shopkeeper continued, Actually, the expensive wine is three jars of wine. Each jar is priced at five hundred taels. Our hotel has a good wine collection of fifty years.
Lets not talk about the wine. Twenty dishes cost 1,500 taels?
MO Ruyue felt that this was an illegal restaurant, and the prices were too high.
It was ten times more expensive than other shops!
Miss, those seafood dishes werent cheap when we bought them. Theres also thousand-year-old ginseng and lingzhi in the chicken soup. Theyre all extremely expensive medicinal herbs.
The shopkeeper had a smile on his face. It was obvious that this was the first time thisdy hade to their restaurant to spend money.
MO Ruyue recalled the ginseng in the chicken. She had enjoyed it very much back then.
He did not know if it was a thousand-year ginseng, but there was indeed ginseng.
He had worked so hard for nothing. A thousand taels of spirit grass was not even enough for a meal at this hotel.
He had to pay two thousand taels for a meal.
He was depressed.
MO Ruyue did not know that it was so expensive. If she had known, she would not havee to this restaurant.
Three thousand silver. Here.
MO Ruyue felt her heart bleeding as she reluctantly took out the money.
After paying, MO Ruyue returned upstairs.
If Fu City earned money, Fu City would spend it, and they would not be able to bring a single cent home.
Not only did he spend the money he earned, but he also paid for it.
When they entered the room, Ming Sihan stood up and looked at MO Ruyues dejected face. He said,Why does your disciple look so depressed? Could it be that he was not full? Do you need more dishes? No need, no need. I cant eat anymore.
When MO Ruyue heard that, she felt ufortable.
MO Chengfeng looked sympathetic. Ruyue must be pained to have spent so much money on a meal.
In that case, lets go. Ruyue, didnt you say that there were stillnterns? Put on thentern?
Ming Sihan was in a good mood.
All the money his disciple earned was spent on his master, which made him very satisfied.
Pack the wine for me.
MO Ruyue asked the waiter beside her to pack the wine.
The Demon Venerable had only opened the lid of the 500 taels of wine and did not finish it.
This man was too wasteful.
Moreover, it was a small jar. The three jars of wine were about six catties, and Ming Sihan only drank half a catty.
She had already finished most of the dishes, so there was nothing to pack. The only thing that could be packed was the unfinished wine on the table,
Why, does your disciple still want to drink? Ming Sihan raised his eyebrows slightly.
Take it back and drink it slowly.
Mo Ruyue squeezed out a smile with great difficulty. She felt very depressed.
Five hundred taels for a jar, she couldnt bear to waste it.
He handed the three jars of wine to MO Chengfeng and ced them in his storage ring.
She could just go to MO Chengfeng and get it when she needed it.
The three of them left the restaurant. MO Ruyue turned around and nced at the name of the restaurant-Divine Wind Restaurant.
Alright, Ill remember the name of this restaurant. I wonte to this restaurant again in the future. This is a ce that made me bleed so much. Ill never forget it in my life.
On the way, MO Ruyue was not as lively as before. Her expression was very gloomy.
She didnt expect that a meal would cost her three thousand taels of silver.
If she had known earlier, she wouldnt have said anything about treating him to a meal.
It was all the Devil Lords fault. He couldnt drink too much wine, but he had to take three jars of wine and drink a little from each jar. It was not easy to return them.
He could have saved a thousand taels!
The more she thought about it, the angrier she got. MO Ruyue felt depressed..
Chapter 727 - 727: Never Leave Each Other
Chapter 727 - 727: Never Leave Each Other
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
You dont look happy. Could it be that treating me to a meal makes you very unhappy?
Ming Sihan asked even though he knew the answer. Anyway, he was in a much better mood now.
Who asked this woman to always be close to MO Chengfeng and not him?
He was doing this on purpose to take revenge on MO Ruyue,
MO Ruyue felt that she had lost more blood today than her aunt.
Facing Ming Sihans question, she could only force herself to smile and say, No, no. Im very happy. Being able to treat master to a meal is the blessing that Ive cultivated in my life.
No matter how unhappy he was in his heart, he still had to maintain his interpersonal rtionship on the surface.
After all, Ming Sihan was the demon lord.
Ming Sihan pinched MO Ruyues cheek and said, Then cheer up and smile.
Dont look so sad.
Alright, alright, alright.
MO Ruyue pretended to pander.
He sneered in his heart.
Who couldugh at such a thing?
MO Chengfeng patted Hillghosts head and sighed inwardly. Ruyue had been tricked by the demon lord.
Didnt you say that you could still put on thenterns? After eating and drinking to his hearts content, shouldnt it be time to put on thenterns
Ming Sihan only felt that MO Ruyues cheeks were soft and tender, making him unable to put them down.
However, as a Demon Venerable, how could he be greedy for that little bit of fondness?
He retracted his hand and changed the topic.
Putting on thenterns, MO Ruyue calmed herself down. She could still earn more money. Wasnt it just three thousand taels?
Her goal was to earn 3 million taels, 30 million taels, 300 million taels!!!
Lets go buy thenterns first.
MO Ruyue saw a small shop sellingnterns and bought tennterns in one go.
The tennterns cost a total of five taels of silver.
Why did you buy so manynterns?
Ming Sihan looked at thentern in MO Ruyues hand. Was she going to sellnterns?
Who didnt have antern in their hands?
Only MO Ruyue was different. She had so manynterns.
Because I want to make a few more wishes to the river god. Im afraid that thentern cant carry too many wishes, so I can only put a few more.
MO Ruyue said seriously.
Ming Sihan raised his eyebrows slightly. Arent you afraid that if you make too many wishes, the River God wont help you fulfill them?
l dont care. I just want to make a wish.
Could it be realized? Then he would leave it to fate.
Wishing was just a form of hope and hope.
If his wish came true, he would thank the River God. If his wish didnte true, then the River God was nothing.
The three of them came to the riverside, MO Ruyue ced thentern beside them.
Master, do you want to make a wish?
She turned around and asked.
No need.
l have no wishes.
Then Master doesnt have anything that he wants?
I will personally take back what I want!
He did not need to ce his hopes on the beliefs of the mortals.
The River God was just a legend in the mortal world.
Mo Ruyue paused for a moment.
The dignified Demon Lord of the Demon Realm was insufferably arrogant and high-spirited. How could he express his wish to something that people imagined?
He turned around and looked at MO Chengfeng. Senior Brother MO, do you have a wish?
Big shots didnt need to make wishes, but for small figures like them, making a wish was still necessary.
Give me antern.
MO Chengfeng hesitated for a moment, but he still asked for antern.
He lit the candle in thentern and nced at MO Ruyue.
He hoped that Ruyue could be happy forever.
As for himself, he had taken his revenge and had nothing to worry about now.
First, a wish, a
MO Ruyue read it out loud.
She wanted Ming Sihan to hear clearly that the Saintess monthly sry was fifty taels, and she felt that she could increase it a little.
Fifty taels was too little.
Ming Sihan raised his eyebrows slightly and asked directly,Oh? How much is your monthly silver now?
Fifty taels a month.
Then how much do you want it to rise to?
At least a hundred taels. After all, the position of Saintess is very risky. A hundred taels is also very reasonable, isnt it? MO Ruyue looked at Ming Han.
There were still many poor families in this world.
Generally, the immortal sects would pay five taels of silver a month. The Demon Realm was considered to have more.
Not only did some stingy immortal sects not give out silver, but they even deducted it from their disciples.
What you said is not without reason. Then lets raise it to a hundred taels.
Your first wish, I will help you fulfill it.
MO Ruyue was touched by Ming Sihans words.
Master, youre really too good to me,
After three years, he had about three thousand taels of silver.
She would have to work for three years to earn the money for a meal.
He felt like vomiting blood just thinking about it.
Initially, she was quite happy about the sry increase, but when she thought of Holy Wind Restaurant, she felt a pang of pain.
He wondered who the boss of the Divine Wind Restaurant was. He must be a treacherous merchant.
A jar of wine was so expensive. Those who could eat there must be rich.
For the second wish, 1 want to earn 300 million! MO Ruyue said as she ced thentern in the water.
The third wish is to be the most powerful woman.
The fourth wish is for Master to live a long life. Ming Sihan raised his eyebrows slightly.
Why did he feel like this woman was cursing him?
After all, the lifespan of a ck Dragon was at least a thousand years old.
The fifth wish, I hope that my senior brothers will be healthy and rich. The sixth wish, I hope that the Demon Realm will prosper forever!
The seventh wish is for world peace.
The eighth wish, charm thousands of young men!
MO Chengfeng and Ming Sihan were stunned. This woman wanted to charm thousands of young men?
This
The ninth wish He hoped to ascend the throne as soon as possible and be the master of the Demon World!
MO Ruyue said directly, but she did not dare to say it out loud for fear of being struck to death by the Demon Lord.
After thenterns were released, thenterns floated further and further away along the water.
There were brightnterns on the river, and the stars were very beautiful.
What is your ninth wish?
Ming Sihan could not help but ask.
Why did this woman stop talking when it came to the ninth wish?
There must be some unknown secret.
MO Chengfeng also looked at MO Ruyue curiously. What was the ninth wish?
Sigh, theres nothing much to say about the ninth wish.
Tell me!
Ming Sihan looked as if he wanted to get to the bottom of it.
It seemed that MO Ruyue would not give up until she told him.
MO Ruyue had no choice. She rolled her beautiful eyes and said shyly,Naturally, Im willing to be with a person of one heart and never leave each other.
In fact, the role of a man was not in MO Ruyues life n at all.
Nien would only hinder her footsteps in bing the new Demon Lord!
It would affect the speed at which she drew her sword.
Ming Sihan lowered his eyes and silently recited MO Ruyues words.
I hope to find a person with one heart, white head and never leave each other.
It was indeed a beautiful wish.
Who was the man who would never leave her?
Thinking that it was another man, Ming Sihan clenched his fists.
It seemed that he had to issue the order that no one was allowed to fall in love in the Demon Realm as soon as possible.
Thenterns are finished. Lets go back.
At this moment, MO Ruyue was already a little tired.
Spending so much money had made her exhausted.
She hoped that all of this was just a dream. When she woke up tomorrow, the thousand taels would still be in her pocket.
Alright, its time to go back.
Ming Sihan replied..
Chapter 728 - 728: Buy What You Like
Chapter 728 - 728: Buy What You Like
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The three of them walked back.
On the way, they met a few naughty children who bumped into Ming Sihan.
When they saw Ming Sihans long silver hair, theyughed and said, White-headed monster, young skin, white-headed monster!
Young skin, white-headed monster.
Ming Sihans face was dark and scary.
MO Ruyue could clearly sense a murderous aura from this man.
A bunch of reckless brats, do they know who they have offended?
You bunch of damned children, get lost quickly. Whats the big deal? You have no manners at all. Didnt your parents teach you to speak properly?
Still not leaving? Ill beat you up!
She had never seen such a naughty child.
Seeing these naughty children, she suddenly didnt like them at all.
Mo Ruyue revealed a fierce expression. She picked up a wooden stick from the ground and chased away those brats.
If these reckless devilish children knew that they had provoked the Demon Worlds Demon Lord, they would probably be scared to death.
MO Ruyue only turned around tofort Ming Sihan after she saw the naughty child being chased away.
Master, dont listen to those stupid kids. Theyre too ignorant. Master, thats just a bunch of brats. Dont be calctive with them. MO Chengfeng also advised the head of the family to go to the first.
The demon looked as if he wanted to kill someone.
The temperature around Ming Sihan suddenly dropped, which gave MO Ruyue a bad feeling. She quickly signaled MO Chengfeng to leave with the mountain ghost while she tried to calm Ming Sihan down.
This was to prevent Ming Sihan from starting a massacre in this ce.
MO Chengfeng immediately understood what MO Ruyue meant. He gave MO Ruyue a reassuring look and then led Hillghost back to the inn.
Master, why dont you go somewhere else?
MO Ruyue said, but Ming Sihan remained unmoved.
She could only hold Ming Sihans fist. This mans fist was so hard.
If he were to punch them, even a thousand of those devilish childrens heads wouldnt be enough to beat them up.
Those children who didnt know were fearless.
Ming Sihans fist was held by a small, slightly cold hand, and he gradually loosened his grip.
He woke LID. and those naughtv kids no longer wanted to kill him.
He nced at MO Ruyue and asked in a low voice, Where are we going?
Of course, well go to a lively ce and stroll around. Master, let me tell you, those devilish children havent seen the world. Theyre so excited when they see a different color of hair.
If it wasnt for the fact that there were too many people on the street and she didnt want to cause amotion, she would have given each of those brats a p.
Since their parents couldnt bear to clean it up, she would do it.
Then, MO Ruyue continued, 1 like the color of your hair very much. Its very unique. If I could dye it, I would dye my hair pink and blue at the same time.
Just like the clown girl, wild, yful, and beautiful!
There was nothing she could dye her hair with now. Otherwise, she would have dyed it long ago.
The first time she saw the clown girl, she was deeply fascinated by her.
The little ugly girl was the viin, and it just so happened that she, the Holy Maiden of the Demon World, was also the viin.
Whos the ugly girl?
My idol is very spicy and valiant.
Anyway, Ming Sihan might not understand.
The Saintess of the Demon World. She wanted to be a different kind of Saintess of the Demon World. The traditional Saintess of the Demon World was the same.
Do you really like the color of my hair?
Of course, silver-white hair is as beautiful as silk. Who doesnt like it?
MO Ruyue nodded earnestly.
The main point was that it was especially clean and emitted a faint fragrance.
No one would like chicken nest hair. As long as it was clean and tidy, there would be no problem.
Youre the first to say that.
Ming Sihan looked at MO Ruyue with a deeper gaze.
Most people would only find his hair color strange and would reject it.
He was so young but had a head full of white hair. It made people wonder if he had some unknown secret.
He was born with white hair.
His dark red eyes were the same.
Because themon people are different, themon people are different, themon people are different.
Whats the big deal? It could only be said that some people had not seen much of the world, and they found it strange when they had not seen it.
MO Ruyue sighed. She could only say nothing to those ignorant people.
However, if those ignorant people were to transmigrate to the modern world, their worldviews would be overturned and their entire worldview would copse.
summer insects cannot speak of ice.
There seems to be a dessert shop in front. Master, lets go buy some sweet pastries to eat.
MO Ruyue pulled Ming Sihan towards the dessert shop.
Eating sweet things would secrete happy Dopamine. With Dopamine, one would be very happy.
Ming Sihan looked down at his hand. This womans hand was much smaller than his, but it was very strong.
Although her hand was small, it gave him a lot of strength.
What kind of hands were these?
Date paste cake, osmanthus cake, lotus seed cake, which one do you want to eat, Master?
MO Ruyue turned around and nced at Ming Sihan.
Her eyes were filled with curiosity.
However, Ming Sihan stared at her hand and realized that she had been holding Ming Sihans hand.
It seems a little hot.
She pulled her hand out from Ming Sihan!s palm.
This mans hands were very warm.
The body temperature of men was generally higher than that of women.
l dont feel hot.
After the hand was pulled away, he actually felt a faint sense of disappointment in his heart.
What was wrong with him these days?
How could his emotions be so easily affected by his own disciple?
It was his first time taking care of a disciple, and he did not know how to do it. In any case, his emotions were already affected.
Master, what kind of pastries do you want to eat?
MO Ruyue asked again.
Whatever. Buy whatever you like.
He didnt really like pastries.
After buying the pastries, MO Ruyue left with Ming Sihan.
Master, try this pastry. Its very sweet.
MO Ruyue took a piece of pastry and stuffed it into her mouth.
It was sweet and soft, and after eating it, the fragrance lingered in the mouth. Ming Sihan nced at the pastries in MO Ruyues hands and frowned slightly.
He didnt reach out for it for a long time.
He felt that these things were not to his liking.
After MO Ruyue finished speaking, she took another piece of pastry and handed it to Ming Sihan.
However, this man turned his face to the side, as if he despised the pastries. The smile on MO Ruyues face gradually disappeared. This man was a little ungrateful.
Seeing that he was her Master, MO Ruyue did not argue with him.
l bought so many but I still cant finish them. It seems that I can only bring them to Senior Brother Mo.
MO Ruyue said regretfully.
He had spent money to buy pastries and even fed them to him, but this person didnt eat them. Clearly, he didnt know how to appreciate kindness. Forget it, he might as well give these pastries to Senior Brother Mo. Presumably, the mountain ghost liked them very much.
When Ming Sihan heard the words Senior Brother MO, he immediately said,Who says 1 cant finish it?
Doesnt Master not like to eat it?
MO Ruyue looked at Ming Sihan, who had changed his attitude, in confusion.
This guy was really unpredictable.
Ming Sihan snatched the pastry from MO Ruyues hands.
Even if it was rotten, he would not let MO Chengfeng eat it.
He called him Senior Brother MO one after another.
Did she still have him in her eyes?
Chapter 729 - 729: How Old Is He?
Chapter 729 - 729: How Old Is He?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When did I say 1 didnt like it?
Clearly
Hmm?
She heard the mans voice rise, full of threat.
MO Ruyue did not dare to continue.
As the saying goes, a wise man understands the times. There was no need to fall out with his master over some trivial matters.
Im not a three-year-old child. Do I need you to feed me? The main body had its own hands and could eat by itself.
Ming Sihans words were filled with disdain.
He was just looking for a way out for himself.
MO Ruyue, however, took his words to heart seriously.
No wonder she didnt even eat it. Ming Sihan didnt like it when others fed him.
She guessed that this man was more or less a clean freak, which was why he minded so much.
It seems that I didnt think it through. Then master, take your time to eat. These pastries taste really good.
MO Ruyue said seriously.
The two of them returned to the inn. MO Ruyue walked towards MO Chengfengs room.
Ming Sihan grabbed MO Ruyues cor.
He questioned, Where are you going? The room is over there.
Hillghost is still with Senior Brother Mo. 1 want to bring him over.
Mo Ruyue couldnt continue walking, so she stopped.
This man, could he not pull the back of her cor?
He strangled her neck and made her roll her eyes.
The mountain ghost wont die if it stays with him for a night.
Ming Sihan snorted, grabbed MO Ruyue by the back of her cor and walked towards the room.
It sounded nice to say that he was going to pick up Hillghost, but in fact, he was just going to see MO Chengfeng.
But
You just want to see MO Chengfeng. How can a man and a woman be alone in the same room at night?
Ming Sihan opened the door roughly and brought MO Ruyue in.
With a flick of his left sleeve, the door closed automatically.
He let go of MO Ruyue when they entered the room.
Master, arent we also a single man and woman in the same room?
MO Ruyue nced at Ming Sihan.
Did this guy not treat him as a human or a man?
Did she forget that she was also a man?
Ming Sihan was stunned by MO Ruyues question and pondered for a while.
You and I are master and disciple. Master for a day, father for life. Ming Sihan said righteously.
Thats right, as a father, he definitely did not want his daughter to be contaminated by another man.
He just didnt want her to have too much intimate contact with other men.
This man took advantage of her!
Then, MO Ruyue smiled and said, Father, after a hundred years of death, will the position of the Demon Lord be mine?
You want my position?
This woman was quite ambitious.
However, she probably wouldnt be able to live past him. A hundred years? He had underestimated him.
MO Ruyue hurriedly shook her head and said, l just think that a son will inherit his fathers business. After you leave, there will be no one to inherit the Devil Realm. Im your disciple, so I naturally have to inherit it, dont 1?
Haha
Ming Sihan just smiled and didnt reply.
MO Ruyue saw that Ming Sihan didnt say anything, so she walked over to the bed in boredom.
The man had already begun to meditate.
She took off her shoes and ced the two swords on her back by the bed.
Then, he turned around and blew out the oilmp on the table.
The entire room was instantly shrouded in darkness.
Master, you dont mind if I blow out themp, right?
MO Ruyue couldnt help but ask as she looked at the meditating figure.
If there was light in the room, it might be difficult for her to fall asleep.
Ming Sihans face darkened, but he didnt say anything.
So be it, he wasnt afraid of the dark.
MO Ruyue rolled up the nket, closed her eyes, and fell asleep.
The next day, they prepared to return to the Demon Realm.
Ruyue, did you sleep wellst night?
MO Chengfeng asked in high spirits. Last night, Ruyue shared a room with the Demon Lord.
MO Ruyue nodded. I slept quite well and Im full of energy. Its all thanks to Master for letting me have the bed.
After eating, we can leave.
Ming Sihan urged.
Ive eaten well.
MO Ruyue put down her chopsticks.
She didnt want to stay in this troublesome ce anymore.
The main reason was that this city had caused her to lose HP.
When she thought of Fu City, she would think of the three thousand taels of silver that she had spent at the Divine Wind Restaurant.
Her money didnte from the wind, so her heart would still ache.
Ruyue, wait a moment.
MO Chengfeng suddenly called out to MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue looked at MO Chengfeng in confusion, thinking that he had something to say.
MO Chengfeng stretched out a hand and approached her. MO Ruyue did not dodge.
Theres still something on the corner of your mouth.
MO Chengfeng smiled and removed the thing that was stuck to him.
Oh, oh.
MO Ruyue blushed slightly, feeling embarrassed.
When she was eating, she identally stuck it to the corner of her mouth.
When Ming Sihan saw this scene, he felt a little irritated.
He had to find a divine doctor to take a look. Was there a problem with his dragon body?
She was always feeling inexplicably irritable or her heartbeat was not right.
Could it be that his dragon body had contracted some incurable disease?
Ming Sihan had always felt that his body was healthy and there was nothing wrong with it.
But now, he was a little uncertain.
Perhaps he could really find a doctor with excellent medical skills to take a look at him.
Ming Sihan walked out.
It was clear and sunny outside, but it could not calm the frustration in his heart.
Master, are we going to walk back like this?
MO Ruyue thought of the road to the Devil World. It was very far. If she walked on her own feet, she did not know how long it would take.
I can fly.
But my disciple cant fly for too long.
Mo Ruyue sighed. She was only at the Aura Refining stage.
Then think of a way yourself.
Ming Sihan nced at MO Ruyue and said faintly.
Alright then, Master, you go back first. Senior Brother MO and I will take our time.
MO Ruyue thought about it. Actually, she felt more free without this man.
With this man around, she couldnt do anything she wanted.
In fact, she did not want to return to the Demon Realm so early. She came out to have fun.
Ming Sihan stopped in his tracks and changed his mind. Theres nothing much to do back in the demon world. 1 can also take a look at the changes in the human world.
Master, how long has it been since you came to the human world?
MO Ruyue couldnt help but ask curiously.
He was so young, probably in his early twenties, but he actually said such words.
It really made people have wild thoughts.
About twenty years.
Ming Sihan thought for a moment and answered casually.
In fact, he could not remember clearly. He was toozy to remember the date.
More than twenty years!!!
Mo Ruyue was deeply shocked. This man had not visited the human world for more than twenty years.
How old was he?
He couldnt possibly be in his twenties.
Using the calction of the human world, the demon lord is almost eighty years old.
Mo Chengfeng reminded him in a low voice.
MO Ruyue was stunned.
Then, when she made a wish for the Demon Lord to live a long life, wasnt she cursing the Demon Lord?
Fortunately, the demon didnt care. Otherwise, she would have died. In another twenty years, the Demon Venerable would die of old age?
She felt that she was really lucky..
Chapter 730 - 730: Speak With Conscience
Chapter 730 - 730: Speak With Conscience
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The way MO Ruyue looked at Ming Sihan changed. Before, she had treated the demon lord as her master, but now, she felt that she could treat him as her grandfather.
It was no wonder that his hair had turned white at such a young age. It seemed normal for someone in his eighties to have white hair. Dont stare at me with that strange gaze.
Ming Sihan was a little unhappy. This woman was really strange.
He was only 80 years old. At his age, he was considered rtively young in the dragon n.
MO Ruyue hurriedly shifted her gaze away.
In order to take care of her master, MO Ruyue spent a huge sum of money to buy a carriage.
She had a reason for spending so much money.
After all, she wouldnt make an investment without a return.
If one day her master passed away, the entire demon world would be hers. At that time, would she still have to worry about not having money?
At that time, she would definitely wear mourning clothes for her master and cry for him.
At this moment, MO Ruyue was already preparing for Ming Sihans funeral in her mind.
Master, lets take this carriage back.
Is it clean inside? Ming Sihan only cared if the carriage was clean.
MO Ruyue nced at him. Her master was really a germaphobe.
The brand new carriage cost me five hundred taels, so it must be very clean Inside. Master, you nave anytnmg to do In tne future, let me do lt.
An eighty-year-old man would definitely not be able to withstand the torment.
On the surface, he looked young, but on the inside, he was already rotten.
MO Ruyue thought to herself.
She was such a filial young man.
Ming Sihan pursed his thin red lips. Although this woman cared about him, Ming Sihan still didnt like this feeling.
He felt that this woman treated him like an old man.
At his current age, he was full of vigor and vitality.
After Ming Sihan got into the carriage, MO Ruyue also hurried up.
Senior Brother MO, Ill leave the task of driving the carriage to you. She said to MO Chengfeng who was outside. No problem, leave it to me.
MO Chengfeng nodded in agreement.
MO Ruyue carried Hillghost to the carriage.
Master, is this ce still clean?
Everything inside was new, and there was a faint sandalwood fragrance in the air.
If she had any objections, she would have nothing to say.
Barely, I can still have the
Ming Sihan opened his mouth and closed his eyes.
MO Ruyue knew that he wanted to meditate, so she did not disturb him.
The old man needed peace and quiet. She wanted to give the old man a quiet environment to meditate.
MO Chengfeng was driving the carriage, which was rtively stable.
It was just that today was the first day of the Alchemy Competition, so there were more people on the streets. The carriage was not easy to drive, so MO Chengfeng could only slow down.
At this moment, MO Chengfeng stopped the carriage.
MO Ruyue lifted the curtain of the carriage and asked, Senior Brother, what happened?
l think I saw Fifth Junior Brother and Junior Sister.
MO Chengfeng said faintly. He saw the backs of two people who looked like Xia
Zhixing and Shen Yunyan.
The two of them are still alive!
MO Ruyue said lightly. When she saw the skeletons of a man and a woman in the forest of Si River, she thought that his Fifth Senior Brother and Little Junior Sister would meet with misfortune.
Ill go and see if its them.
As he spoke, MO Chengfeng abandoned the carriage and chased after them.
What happened?
Ming Sihans deep voice sounded behind her.
MO Ruyue lowered the curtain and returned to the carriage.
Senior Brother MO, I think I saw Senior Brother Xia and Junior Sister. 1 thought they were killed.
Ming Sihans pupils shrank. Was she the woman who called him an earthworm?
Thinking of this, Ming Sihan felt a chill down his spine.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but shiver.
Why did the temperature drop?
She carefully nced at Ming Sihan, but she couldnt see anything strange on his face.
Xia Zhixing and Shen Yunyan thought that they had seen wrongly when they saw MO Chengfeng.
Senior Brother MO? Why are you in Fu City?
Xia Zhixing was surprised. After a closer look, he realized that this man was really MO Chengfeng.
The silver bone fracture fan in his hand was proof of his identity.
Shen Yunyan stared at MO Chengdi with a smile on her face. She quickly walked up to him and asked excitedly,Senior Brother, are you here to look for Yun Yan?
MO Chengfeng nced at Shen Yunyan but did not say anything. Instead, he looked at Xia Zhixing and said, The Honor Demon was worried that you guys were looking for the Heaven-cleaving Sword, so he asked me and Junior Sister Ruyue toe over and help. Later, the Honor Demon also came, and we stayed with the Honor Demon
He quietly distanced himself from Shen Yunyan.
So youve already gotten the Heaven-cleaving Sword, right?
After hearing what MO Chengfeng said, Xia Zhixing felt a little ashamed.
Yes, the Heaven-cleaving Sword has already been obtained.
MO Chengfeng replied, his gaze sizing up the two of them.
Xia Zhixing lowered her eyes and couldnt help but sigh,You and Ruyue arrivedter than us, but you found the Heaven-cleaving Sword earlier than us.
Little Junior Sister and I are really useless.
They had been going around for so long, but they still didnt know where the Heaven-cleaving Sword was. They only knew that the Heaven-cleaving Sword was in the Sishui area.
They had let down the Demon Lords expectations of them.
Shen Yunyan didnt think much of it and said, Its also because the Demon Venerable has arrived that we were able to find the Heaven-cleaving Sword. If there was no Demon Venerable, Senior Brother MO and Senior Sister Ruyue might not have been able to find the Heaven-cleaving Sword, right? As expected of the Demon Venerable, hes indeed very powerful. The Demon Venerable must have found the Heaven-cleaving Sword! Shen Yunyan said confidently.
She didnt feel that she had lost her face. Wasnt MO Ruyue able to find the Heaven-cleaving Sword because of the Demon Venerable?
MO Chengfeng didnt want to bother with Shen Yunyan, but hearing her words made him feel ufortable.
He and Ruyue were just like the two of them.
Ruyue and I were the ones who first arrived at the sealed area of the
Heaven-cleaving Sword. The Demon Venerable cameter. Moreover, the
Heaven-cleaving Sword was not pulled out by the Demon Venerable, but
Ruyue.
Of course, he didnt mean that the Demon Venerables past was useless.
He just didnt like what Shen Yunyan had said.
A sword that even the Demon Venerable couldnt pull out, how could she, MO
Ruyue, pull it out? Senior Brother MO, I know youre protecting Senior Sister Ruyue, but dont blindly protect her. You have to speak with your conscience.
Shen Yunyan did not believe that MO Ruyue was the one who pulled out the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
This was simply a fantasy.
MO Ruyue was just a small cultivator.
Im telling the truth. If you dont want to hear it or believe it, then who do you want to believe?
MO Chengfeng frowned. Did Shen Yunyan think that he was lying?
Finally, MO Chengfeng said coldly,Shen Yunyan, do you have something against the Saint?
Hearing MO Chengfengs cold voice, Shen Yunyan couldnt help mutter, Im not talking nonsense.
Then do you know who the current owner of the Heaven-cleaving Sword is?
MO Chengfeng asked again.
Shen Yunyan replied without hesitation, Such a good peerless divine sword
should naturally be given to the Demon Commander. Only the Demon Commander is worthy of the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Was there a need to ask such a question?
Then youre wrong. The current owner of this Heaven-cleaving Sword is MO
Ruyue.
MO Chengfeng said word by word as he stared at the change in Shen Yunyans face.
Shen Yunyans expression changed from disdain to shock.
She could not believe what she had just heard.
How was this possible?
The owner of the Heaven-cleaving Sword was actually that damned woman, MO Ruyue?
MO Chengfeng must be joking with her.
Xia Zhixing also widened her eyes.. This shouldnt be true, right?
Chapter 731 - 731: Is He Really Sick?
Chapter 731 - 731: Is He Really Sick?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Senior Sister Ruyue actually wants to take the Heaven-cleaving Sword for herself?
Shen Yunyan blurted out.
MO Ruyue must have wanted to take the Heaven-cleaving Sword for herself.
MO Chengfeng did not understand why Shen Yunyan would have such thoughts.
This woman seemed to hate Ruyue.
Dont say such things. The Heaven-cleaving Sword was given to Ruyue by the Demon Venerable.
After all, Ruyue was the one who pulled it out.
MO Chengfeng opened the silver bone fracture fan in his hand and casually fanned it twice.
Both the Demon Venerable and Ling Shoumo had pulled out the
Heaven-cleaving Sword before. He had pulled it out as well, but none of them had been able to pull it out. Instead, MO Ruyue had easily pulled it out.
This was enough to prove that MO Ruyue and the Heaven-Splitting Sword were fated.
Senior Brother MO, is this real?
Xia Zhixing asked again.
MO Chengfeng pursed his lips. Why was it so difficult for them to believe that Ruyue was the owner of the Heaven-cleaving Sword?
If you dont believe me, youll know when youe with us to see the Demon Venerable.
Mo Chengfeng was toozy to waste his breath. He could just bring them to see.
In the carriage, MO Ruyue sized up Ming Sihan. This man was quite good-looking.
He did not expect such a young appearance to be already eighty years old.
He could be her grandfather.
Master, can I call you grandpa in the future?
MO Ruyue asked.
Ming Sihan, who was resting with his eyes closed, knew that this woman was staring at him, but he didnt stop her.
Hearing the womans words, his eyshes trembled slightly and he instantly opened his eyes. His dark red eyes were even colder.
Am I that old?
Then you call me grandpa?
Youre eighty years old, and Im almost twenty years old. Its not too much to call me grandpa, right?
Dontpare your age to mine. You cantpare to me,
Ming Si said coldly.
At this moment, Xia Zhixing and Shen Yunyans voices could be heard from outside.
This subordinate pays his respects to Master.
This subordinate pays his respects to Master.
Shen Yunyan and Xia Zhixings voices rang out from outside.
Shen Yunyan, I order you to dig up 1,000 earthworms. If you cant finish digging, bring your head to me.
This order caught everyone off guard.
Everyone was instantly stunned.
What was the meaning of digging earthworms?
Moreover, he had to dig out a thousand earthworms.
You cant let others help you. If this venerable self finds out that you let others help you, then Ill dig another thousand.
Ming Sihan added another sentence, which made everyone even more confused.
Didnt you hear what I said?
Ming Sihans voice turned cold.
Shen Yunyan could only reply,Yes, I ept your orders.
The demon actually ordered her to dig up a thousand earthworms. She hated those disgusting earthworms the most.
She didnt understand how she had offended the Demon Lord to be punished for digging earthworms.
MO Ruyue must have said something bad about her in the Demon Commanders ear, which was why he punished her.
What a two-faced MO Ruyue.
She would remember this debt.
MO Chengfeng is driving back to the Devil World.
Ming Sihan instructed and didnt say anything else.
Xia Zhixing scratched the back of his head. What was going on?
He and Shen Yunyan were the ones who came out to look for the
Heaven-cleaving Sword. Now that they had notpleted their mission, even if they were to be punished, they should be punished together.
But why did the demon punish Shen Yunyan alone? And why did he make Shen Yunyan dig earthworms?
What, whats going on? Punish you for digging earthworms?
Xia Zhixing turned to look at Shen Yunyan with confusion.
Moreover, Shen Yunyan had to dig it herself. If she couldnt help, she would have to dig another thousand earthworms.
What was the meaning of this punishment?
Xia Zhixing couldnt understand even if he racked his brains.
He felt that he had been ignored by the demon lord the entire time.
Senior Brother, it must be MO Ruyues doing. MO Ruyue deliberately spoke ill of me in front of the Demon Venerable so that he could punish me.
Shen Yunyan was a little flustered.
But why did Ruyue do that?
Xia Zhixing could not believe that Ruyue was behind this.
Why would a Demon Lord listen to the Holy Maiden?
Besides, what was Ruyues motive for doing this?
There was no reason for that.
Shen Yunyan looked at the carriage that was gradually leaving and bit her lips. Senior Sister Ruyue must be jealous of me.
Ah? Xia Zhixing looked at her in surprise and added, Why is Ruyue jealous of you?
Shes jealous that Im good-looking and especially liked by my senior brothers.
Shen Yunyan felt that she was right.
This woman, MO Ruyue, was too vicious.
Its not that bad. Its really not that bad.
Xia Zhixing waved her hand and continued,If you say that Ruyue was jealous of your beauty in the past, I think its possible. But its really impossible now.
Junior Sister Ruyue is much prettier than you.
His heart was more straightforward, so his words were naturally more straightforward.
Shen Yunyans face turned green and red when she heard Xia Zhixings words.
Why was Xia Zhixing speaking up for MO Ruyue?
How infuriating.
This blockhead!
Hmph, I dont want to talk to you anymore.
Shen Yunyan stomped her feet and turned to run.
Xia Zhixing didnt chase after her, but said to Shen Yunyans back,Ill wait for you at the inn from before.
Hearing Xia Zhixings words, Shen Yunyan quickened her steps.
Seriously, youre always like this. If you cant win, youll run.
Xia Zhixing shook her head. She didnt know what Shen Yunyan was thinking.
But this was not important.
In the carriage, MO Ru Yue looked puzzled.
If you have anything to say, just ask.
Ming Sihan saw MO Ruyue staring at him in confusion, so he couldnt help but say,
Master, I really dont understand why you asked Shen Yunyan to dig up 1,000 earthworms to eat or to make herbs.
MO Ruyue stroked her chin, her face full of disbelief.
She might not know earthworms. Is there a problem with letting her know earthworms?
Ming Sihan questioned.
Mo Ruyue hurriedly shook her head. No, no. Im just curious.
She didnt know what kind of grudge the demon had with Shen Yunyan, but it was fine as long as it had nothing to do with her.
Outside, MO Chengfeng was also confused, not understanding what the Demon Commander had done.
He had never seen such a punishment.
MO Ruyue took out a packet of pastries and fed it to Hillghost.
But Master, what you said does make sense.
What do you mean?
Shen Yunyan probably doesnt know about earthworms. I had a pet snake before, but that woman said it was an earthworm.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but recall what had happened before.
Ming Sihan!s face darkened. This woman had the nerve to say that others were blind.
Wasnt she the same?
A dignified ck dragon actually recognized a snake.
Seeing that Ming Sihan didnt say anything, MO Ruyue had no choice but to shut up.
The carriage leisurely traveled along the forest path. When MO Ruyue was tired, she would lean against the carriage and sleep.
He was holding Hillghost in his arms. Hillghost had already closed its eyes, clearly asleep.
MO Ruyue tilted her head to the side.
Ming Sihan closed his eyes and meditated, but he felt that MO Ruyues shoulder was heavy. It turned out that MO Ruyue was asleep, and his head was leaning on his shoulder.
He subconsciously wanted to push MO Ruyue away, but he stopped when he reached out his hand.
Looking at her peaceful sleeping face, he felt that his chest seemed to be failing again.
Was he really sick?
Moreover, the cause of the illness might be rted to MO Ruyue..
Chapter 732 - 732: You Are So Good To Me
Chapter 732 - 732: You Are So Good To Me
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Therefore, he immediately woke MO Ruyue up and pinched her delicate little nose.
MO Ruyues breathing was not smooth and she woke up from her dream.
Master, why are you pinching my nose? MO Ruyue rubbed her nose in pain.
This man was too much!
Look at where youre leaning against.
Ming Sihan reminded him as he tidied his clothes.
Didnt this woman know what was going on?
MO Ruyue realized that she was too close to Ming Sihan.
Only then did he hurriedly move his butt back and say in a low voice, Master, disciple, I didnt do it on purpose.
When night fell, a group of bandits surrounded their carriage.
l opened this road and nted this tree. If you want to pass by, leave behind money to buy the road.
Forever unchanged robbery opening,
MO Ruyue put down Mountain Ghost and walked out of the room.
Ruyue, you stay inside. Leave this to me.
MO Chengfeng nced at the bandits in front of him. There were about eight or nine of them, and one of them was even a one-eyed man.
Oh my, theres still that little beauty. Keep her here too, or else dont even think about leaving here alive.
The one-eyed man in the lead stared at MO Ruyue lecherously.
MO Ruyue sat outside the carriage and listened to the bandits. She sighed inwardly.
Were these people here to die?
Can we report these people for deliberately sending themselves to death?
Senior Brother, go deal with them. Ill cheer you on here. Oh, right, dont use your sword. Use your fan to deal with them. I want to see you use your fan to deal with them.
MO Ruyue reminded him. Fighting with a fan would definitely look cool.
She couldnt wait to see a cool fight.
MO Chengfeng looked at MO Ruyue dotingly and agreed without hesitation.
Alright, Ill use a fan then.
MO Chengfeng held the silver bone fracture fan in his hand and flew out.
The bandits were still a little afraid, but when they saw that there was only one person in front of them, they did not believe that they could not defeat one person with so many people.
At least a few of them were at the Qi Refinement realm.
Brothers, kill!
The one-eyed man gave the order and brought his brothers to surround MO Chengfeng.
At this moment, MO Ruyue realized that she was not 100% sure that she could catch the de with her bare hands.
It should be that the experience effect of catching a de with one hundred percent bare hands had lost its effect.
Thats great. There wont be any more awkward situations in the future.
Senior Brother, you can do it. Senior Brother is so handsome! Senior Brother is awesome
MO Ruyue shouted loudly as she looked at MO Chengfengs ghostly figure and his cool yet elegant moves. She felt that this was a feast for the eyes.
Ming Sihan, who was in the carriage, listened to MO Ruyues happy voice. He didnt understand. Was Mo Chengfengs fight really that good?
He nced at Hillghost who was eating.
Hillghost quietly hid the pastries in his hands behind his back and quickly slipped outside.
The mans gaze seemed to want to snatch the pastry from its hands.
It was better to stay by this womans side. He did not have to worry about the food in his hands being snatched away.
Moreover, this woman would feed it from time to time.
Therefore, it decided to stay by this womans side and freeload.
Of course, it would not freeload for nothing. As long as there was a need to fight in the future, it would definitely bear the brunt.
The mountain bandit was beaten up by MO Chengfeng and fled. He was no match for MO Chengfeng at all.
Other than two who died on the spot, the rest of the bandits fled.
Shixiong is so powerful! Such a powerful senior brother, who knew which girl would benefit in the future?
MO Ruyue smiled.
This man was simply too handsome when he fought with a fan.
MO Chengfeng flew up and slowlynded outside the carriage.
Theyre Just ordinary mountain bandits. MO Chengfeng said humbly.
But I still feel that Shixiong is very powerful. Suddenly, a low voice came out of the carriage.
We can continue on our way.
MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng looked at each other. The Demon Lords voice was really cold.
The demon inside had a cold expression.
Was he already powerful enough to deal with a few small mountain bandits?
A woman who had never seen the world.
MO Chengfeng continued driving the carriage forward.
MO Ruyue shrunk into the carriage and hugged the mountain ghost.
The carriage was lonely and silent.
After a long time, MO Ruyue yawned sleepily and said to Ming Sihan, Master, should we stop and rest? It was alreadyte at night, and it was not easy to rush.
Up to you.
Ming Sihan closed his eyes and spat out two words.
MO Ruyue thought for a moment. She really did not want to continue sitting in the carriage. She needed to find a stable ce to lie down and rest.
Otherwise, Bonehead wouldnt be able to take it.
Thus, he said to MO Chengfeng outside, Shixiong, lets find a ce to rest.
Alright.
MO Chengfeng replied.
There was a t ce in front of him where he could lie down and rest.
The carriage stopped. Mo Ruyue was about to get off when she heard the mans heavy breathing.
She hesitated for a moment and asked softly, Master, are you going down to rest?
Ming Sihan opened his eyes.
Master,e, let me help you down.
Mo Ruyue took the initiative to stretch out her hand to support her master.
No need.
Did he look like a good-for-nothing? He actually needed to be helped down.
MO Ruyue had no choice but to get off the carriage first.
Outside, MO Chengfeng picked up some firewood and started a fire.
Mo Ruyue hugged the mountain ghost and warmed it by the fire. However, the mountain ghost seemed to be a little afraid of fire, so it hid in MO Ruyues arms like a ko.
From time to time, it would make a sobbing sound.
Theres not much firewood here. Ill go and pick up some firewood nearby.
Senior Brother, Ill go with you.
No need. Its dark here. You and the Demon Lord can stay here.
After MO Chengfeng left, only MO Ruyue and the Demon Venerable were left.
Ming Sihan sat on a rock by the side and stared at MO Ruyue. Do you really dislike being with me that much?
Master, whats wrong?
MO Ruyue looked at Ming Sihan with confusion. How did she offend this man again?
Seeing MO Ruyues puzzled expression, Ming Sihan snorted coldly.
He decided not to speak anymore.
After waiting for a long time, Ming Sihan still didnt respond. MO Ruyue was really confused.
What did this man mean?
He said something she didnt understand.
After a while, MO Chengfeng came back with a pile of firewood.
Junior Sister, are you hungry?
A little. Senior Brother, do you have anything to eat? MO Ruyue asked.
MO Chengfeng took out some jerky from his storage ring.
He had never put food in his storage ring before because he thought it would be bad.
But now, he hadpletely changed his mind.
It was better to prepare some food in the storage ring at all times.
Mo Ruyue and Hillghosts eyes instantly lit up.
It was actually delicious jerky.
You can have them all.
MO Chengfeng generously gave all the jerky in his hand to MO Ruyue.
These were all prepared for Ruyue.
Thank you, senior brother. Youre so good to me.
MO Ruyue was deeply moved. This was a truly good senior brother. Its good that you like it. I was afraid that you wouldnt like it.
Mo Chengfeng was very happy to see that Mo Ruyue liked it.
It turned out that seeing others happy made him happy too..
Chapter 733 - 733: Being Chased Out of the Demon World Again
Chapter 733 - 733: Being Chased Out of the Demon World Again
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue ate the jerky and was not stingy with her praise.
Its too delicious. Senior brother, you should eat too.
As she spoke, MO Ruyue picked up the jerky and fed it to MO Chengfeng.
MO Chengfeng subconsciously retreated. He was not afraid, but rather ttered.
Mas Junior Sister
His face was slightly red. Fortunately, it was dark, so no one could see the redness on his face.
Senior Brother, you eat too.
Of course, good things should be shared together.
MO Ruyue didnt feel that she had done anything wrong.
She didnt notice that a certain mans expression was unusually gloomy.
That woman actually fed MO Chengfeng!
Mo Chengfeng could only open his mouth and eat the jerky that Mo Ruyue fed him.
The meat jerky was just right in saltiness.
MO Ruyue took the jerky and walked in front of Ming Sihan.
She had wanted to feed her master the jerky herself, but then she remembered that her master seemed to have mysophobia and didnt like others feeding her.
Therefore, she could only present the jerky to Ming Sihan.
Master, these jerky are delicious. You should eat some too.
Ming Sihan stared at MO Ruyue. This woman could feed MO Chengfeng and the mountain ghost.
But she didnt feed him?
This was too biased.
This venerable self has never eaten these vulgar things.
Ming Sihan closed his eyes.
Alright then.
Mo Ruyue had no other choice. Ming Sihan was the one who didnt want to eat it, not because she didnt respect her master.
At night, MO Ruyue hugged the mountain ghost and slept on the ground.
Mo Chengfeng woke up in the middle of the night to add firewood. He noticed that MO Ruyue seemed a little cold nearby, so he took off his coat and covered
MO Ruyue with it.
After doing all this, MO Chengfeng prepared to continue sleeping.
Ming Sihan took in all of this.
After returning to the Demon Realm.
Mo Ruyue left Hillghost in Li Zeyans care while shey in bed and slept for a day and a night.
After running around for a few days, all the bones in his body seemed to have fallen apart.
Ever since she had rested outside for a night, she had spent the next day and the third day in the carriage. For three consecutive days and two nights, she had not had a good rest.
She had asked Ming Sihan for instructions, but he insisted on continuing on their journey.
Then she naturally had nothing to say.
No matter how ufortable she was, she could only endure it.
After sleeping for a day and a night, she finally feltfortable. Sister, someone just sent a message that the demon wants to see you.
Li Zeyan came in from outside and saw MO Ruyue waking up.
He was still hesitating whether he should wake MO Ruyue up.
Mo Ruyue got off the bed and stretched herself. Damn it, I just woke up and you want me to go over?
He wondered if there was another mission.
Wheres Mountain Ghost?
Oh, I locked the mountain ghost in a cage.
What is it? How could he lock the mountain ghost in a cage? Hurry up and let the mountain ghost out.
MO Ruyue looked nervous. She quickly asked Li Zeyan to release the mountain ghost.
Li Zeyan lowered his eyes and replied dejectedly.
After Hillghost was released, it immediately jumped onto MO Ruyue and
hugged her tightly.
Those round eyes were filled with fear.
From time to time, he would look at Li Zeyan as if he was some kind of terrifying being.
Brother Zeyan, did you do something to Hillghost? MO Ruyue seemed to have noticed something.
This was very wrong.
Although Hillghost was quite timid, he wasnt that timid.
She was actually afraid of Li Zeyan?
Sister, I just locked it in the cage. I didnt do anything to it.
Li Zeyan looked innocent.
Of course, he wished he could eat Hillghost and stay by his sisters side!
Damn!
However, he could not do that. If his sister was angry, she would definitely chase him away.
MO Ruyue nced at Li Zeyan and felt that he was not lying.
Gui Gui, dont be afraid. Hes your big brother, he wont hurt you. Hillghost still refused to let go after hearing MO Ruyues words.
He was still hugging MO Ruyue tightly.
Ill take Hillghost to see the demon lord first.
Yes, sister, you should go early ande back early.
Li Zeyan walked MO Ruyue out of the courtyard. When MO Ruyue turned around, his eyes turned cold.
For a moment, there was no warmth in his eyes, only endless coldness.
The little mountain ghost was actually staying by his sisters side?
Damn it!
Hillghost saw the look in Li Zeyans eyes and nervously shrank into MO Ruyues arms.
A woman who could catch the eye of a big shot must be very powerful.
Therefore, Hillghost was determined to stay by this womans side, even if it meant signing a blood contract.
However, it had brought its master to the Heaven-cleaving Sword and saved its master.
The more Hillghost thought about it, the more pleased he became.
MO Ruyue saw Ming Sihan and bowed respectfully to him. Master, you were looking for me?
She raised her head and checked her masters feelings for her.
Unknowingly, it had already reached thirty.
This was quite high.
It meant that this man trusted her more and more.
The Salted Fish Systems mission was the most difficult one she had ever encountered.
He hoped that he could finish this mission as soon as possible. In the future, he would not do any more missions that required him to increase his heart rate. It was too difficult toplete.
She really wasnt good at attacking someone.
Ming Sihan didnt say anything for a long time. MO Ruyue looked up and met Ming Sihans gaze.
Master?
This venerable self is feeling a little unwell. Go to the Western Region and invite a divine doctor called He Xi over.
Ming Sihan sat up straight and said to MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue was rmed when she heard her master say that he wasnt feeling well. Could it be that the Demon Venerable was dying?
Master, why dont we let someone else invite him? If youre not feeling well, this disciple should stay by your side to take care of you.
When the time came, she would wait for this man to write his will.
If she wasnt around her master, she was afraid that there would be trouble.
He did not expect the Demon Venerable to die so quickly.
Didnt they say that he could live for a long time? Why are you not feeling well now?
MO Ruyues mind was racing.
You want to stay by my side and take care of me?
For some reason, the difort in his heart lessened when he heard this.
MO Ruyue hurriedly nodded. A teacher for a day is a father for life. If youre sick, I should be by your side to take care of you.
This disciple has the duty and responsibility to take care of Master in his old age. This disciple cant leave Master. If I cant even see Master for thest time, this disciple will regret it for the rest of my life.
Her filial piety could be seen by the heavens.
Ming Sihan was originally in a good mood, but after hearing MO Ruyues words, he felt that his illness seemed to have worsened.
Was this woman hoping that he would die early?
l think you cant wait for me to ride a crane to the west, right?
No, no, I dont dare.
If you dont dare, then go find Miracle Doctor He Xi. This persons whereabouts are uncertain and his temper is strange. Ill give you a month to find him.
He did not want to see this woman for the time being.
This woman was always able able to affect the mood of the Infernal Realm.
Alright, Master. MO Ruyue could only agree. Theres no time to lose. Hurry up and set off!
Oh.
MO Ruyue responded. She had just returned to the Devil World, and now she was about to be driven out of the Devil World.
His butt hadnt even warmed up yet.
It was said that the Demon Lord was not easy to serve. She did not think so in the past, but now she really felt that this man was not easy to serve.
Let MoLet Ye Yunfeng apany you.
He had wanted to ask MO Chengfeng to apany this woman, but this woman kept having an ambiguous rtionship with MO Chengfeng.
Therefore, he absolutely could not let these two continue to be together.
Furthermore, going to the West Lake Region was filled with danger. He was worried that this woman would not be able to handle it, so it was better to take a photo of someone following her.
He didnt want to hear that this woman had been killed.
Thinking about it, the only person who could be sent out now was Ye Yunfeng.
Ye Yunfengs cold personality also made him feel more at ease..
Chapter 734 - 734: It Was Arranged by the Demon Venerable
Chapter 734 - 734: It Was Arranged by the Demon Venerable
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Alright.
MO Ruyue agreed. Fortunately, she wasnt going to the West Lake Region alone.
If she was alone, it would be very boring.
Although Third Senior Brother didnt talk much, he was still a good person.
For the sake of her sickly Master, she and her Third Senior Brother Ye
Yunfeng went to the West Lake Region to look for the Divine Doctor He Xi.
MO Ruyue went back to the courtyard first. It wasnt easy for her toe back, so she had to have a good meal. Sister, why did the demon call you?
Li Zeyan asked curiously.
Looking at MO Ruyues dejected expression, it was likely that the Demon Lord had asked her sister to do some difficult task.
What else? The Demon Lord sent me out to do a mission again. Youve just returned, and youre already going out to do missions?
This was too tiring, but could he bring him along this time?
Theres nothing I can do. Who asked me to be the saintess of the demon race?
Im dedicated to my job and have a strong ability to carry out my duties. Therefore, the Demon Lord naturally values me especially and lets me do all the missions.
MO Ruyue bragged.
Then can you bring me along when you go out this time?
Li Zeyan asked eagerly, his sparkling eyes filled with anticipation. MO Ruyue shook her head. No, I cant. My mission is quite dangerous.
But Im not afraid of danger.
But Im afraid. Youre just a child who hasnt grown up yet.
MO Ruyue walked towards the vegetable garden to see what she could cook.
Li Zeyan followed behind MO Ruyue. Sister, are you bringing Hillghost?
Yes, Ill bring Gui Gui along. Gui Gui is small after all, and shes quite capable.
Hillghosts ears perked up when he heard his master praise him.
It had received its masters approval.
Li Zeyans heart was filled with jealousy, but he couldnt change anything.
However, the look he gave Hillghost became more and more unfriendly.
That hateful mountain ghost was actually staying by his sisters side.
Li Zeyan was angry but did not dare to speak.
He was afraid that his sister would doubt him if he said too much.
It wasnt easy for him to get his sister to keep him by her side. He couldnt let his sister suspect him at this time.
Sister, I found you first in this life.
Li Zeyans fists clenched and loosened.
There were some things that his sister would naturally know in the future.
MO Ruyue picked a few vegetables from the vegetable garden and handed them to Li Zeyan.Brother Zeyan, I want to eat your noodles. Your noodles are the best.
Sister, do you like the noodles I made?
Li Zeyan looked at MO Ruyue in disbelief.
Had his cooking finally gotten his sisters approval? Her heart was filled with joy.
Of course, Brother Zeyans cooking is not just delicious.
Mo Ruyue said seriously.
Although Li Zeyans skills were not bad,pared to her, he was still a little inferior.
The reason why she said that was to encourage the child to help her cook noodles.
She was toozy to do it herself.
Wasnt it good to just sit there and eat ready-made food?
Li Zeyan was very happy after hearing MO Ruyues words.
Wasnt he much stronger than Hillghost? Hillghost only knew how to open its mouth to eat, but he knew how to cook delicious food.
Sister, wait here. Ill go make noodles for you.
Okay, if possible, give me two more poached eggs. No, I want four. Hillghost also wants two poached eggs.
MO Ruyue stretched out two fingers, then quickly changed to four fingers.
Hillghost jumped and squeaked.
When Li Zeyan heard that Hillghost wanted two as well, the smile on his face froze.
When would this mountain ghost leave his sister?
Li Zeyan had no choice but to obediently go to the kitchen to cook noodles, even though he was unhappy.
MO Ruyue sat on the swing, swinging from time to time as she took a deep breath of the Devil Worlds air.
Soon, she would have to leave this ce again.
In the past, no one cared about her. She just muddled along. When she had a mission, she would go out with her senior brothers to fish in troubled waters. When she had nothing to do, she would sleep here and nt vegetables.
Outside, Qi Shaoyu appeared once again.
Junior Sister, youre back?
Qi Shaoyu looked at Mo Ruyue with aplicated expression.
MO Ruyue nced at Qi Shaoyu and said,Yes, Im back, but I have to leave soon.
What do you mean?
He had just returned, could it be that he was going out again?
Qi Shaoyu walked into the courtyard, his face full of curiosity. l have toplete the mission given by the Demon Lord.
MO Ruyue sighed. The position of Saintess was not easy.
Fortunately, she had a raise in her sry. Otherwise, she would be a little upset.
If there was a sry, everything would be fine.
Did the Heaven-cleaving Sword mission go smoothly?
It went quite smoothly. Oh right, let me introduce you. This is my new partner, Gui Gui.
MO Ruyue introduced Mountain Ghost to Qi Shaoyu.
Hillghost jumped onto MO Ruyues shoulder. He was not interested in Qi Shaoyu.
Previously, you and Senior Brother MO went to look for the Heaven-cleaving
Sword, right?
Yes, thats right.
Why should I go with you? You dont agree? Do you have any dissatisfaction or opinions about me?
Although these questions were a little abrupt, he still couldnt help but ask.
Could it be that Junior Sister had some prejudice against him?
If he had offended his junior sister in any way, he was willing to apologize.
At that time, I only thought that it would be more convenient to act alone, so 1 didnt think too much about it. Senior Brother, dont take it to heart.
MO Ruyue exined.
But what did Senior Brother MO say? Senior Brother MO is more important to you, right?
Qi Shaoyu stared into MO Ruyues eyes, wanting to know the real answer.
Sixth Senior Brother, the reason why Senior Brother MO is with me is entirely because of the Demon Lords arrangement. Its not my personal choice!
Even if she wanted to act together with Senior Brother MO, what did it have to do with Sixth Senior Brother?
MO Ruyue did not like Qi Shaoyu asking her this.
When Qi Shaoyu heard about the demon lord, he felt relieved.
It was all arranged by the Demon Lord, right?
Thats right. The Demon Lord was worried that I would go find the
Heaven-cleaving Sword alone, so he asked Senior Brother MO to follow me.
MO Ruyue exined helplessly.
Sister, the noodles are ready.
Li Zeyan brought out two bowls of noodles from the kitchen.
Seeing Qi Shaoyu here, his face darkened and he continued,Ill only cook the noodles for my sister and my sister. Senior Brother Qi, why dont you go to the kitchen to cook noodles?
He did not want to serve this man anymore.
Qi Shaoyu looked at the in noodles and didnt have much appetite. He said,No need. You can eat the noodles yourself.
He only came to ask about something. After hearing the exnation, he felt much better.
Noodles, noodles, my favorite noodles, and my favorite poached egg.
MO Ruyue swallowed her saliva.
Li Zeyan ced the noodles on the table and returned to the kitchen to bring out the dishes.
After doing all this, he could eat noodles.
MO Ruyues stomach was already growling with hunger. She was gorging herself on the noodles like a reincarnated hungry ghost.
Zeyan, your noodles are too delicious.
Sister, if you like to eat, then eat more. Theres still more in the pot.
After saying that, Li Zeyan nced at Qi Shaoyu, obviously not wanting to let Qi Shaoyu eat.
If he wanted to eat it, he could make it himself. He had made all these for his sister.
Qi Shaoyu saw through Li Zeyans thoughts, but he didnt say anything.
He wasnt interested in what Li Zeyan was cooking.
Hillghost was eating a poached egg.
The poached eggs made by a big shot could actually be so delicious!
Chapter 735 - 735: Sister’s Pride
Chapter 735 - 735: Sisters Pride
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After eating a bowl of noodles, MO Ruyue rubbed her belly and said, Im so happy.
Li Zeyans face was filled with smiles when he heard MO Ruyue say that she was happy.
At this moment, MO Chengfeng brought some things to MO Ruyues courtyard.
Senior Brother MO, why are you here?
MO Ruyue couldnt help but ask curiously when she saw MO Chengfeng.
MO Chengfeng was holding a lot of fruits in his hands, and he had a casual smile on his face.
When he saw Qi Shaoyu, he was slightly surprised but quickly recovered.
l brought you some food. I heard that the Demon Lord summoned you again?
MO Chengfeng didnt understand why the Demon Lord wanted to see Ruyue.
He had just returned from the outside, so he should at least let Ruyue rest for three to four days.
Thank you, Senior Brother.
Looking at the basket of fruits, MO Ruyue felt even happier.
MO Ruyue picked up an orange and said,Demon Venerable, youve indeede to find me today. Is there a mission?
MO Chengfeng asked.
MO Ruyue nodded. Yes, the Demon Lord asked me to go to the West Lake Region to find a miracle doctor called He Xi.
Why are you looking for the divine doctor? MO Chengfeng didnt understand. Could it be that the Demon Venerable was sick?
The Demon Venerable is not feeling well. When Im not in the Demon Realm, Senior Brother, you must take good care of the Demon Venerable for me. MO Ruyue said worriedly.
MO Chengfeng was a little puzzled. Why would the Supreme be feeling unwell?
This was somewhat inconceivable.
The West Ze Region was not a ce that was close to them, and it was filled with danger.
He wanted to take care of the Demon Venerable, but he felt that the Demon Venerable did not need his care.
Youre going to the West Lake Region alone?
If Ruyue were to go to the West Lake Region alone, he would not be at ease.
Nioreover, the legendary Miracle Doctor He Xi was unpredictable and had a particrly strange temper. This journey would not be easy.
No, the Demon Lord has arranged for Third Senior Brother to go with me.
When the timees, I can bring Mountain Ghost.
MO Ruyue said as she tapped Hillghosts little head with her finger.
Is Ye Yunfeng going with you?
Nio Chengfeng lowered his eyes. He did not expect that the demon would arrange for Ye Yunfeng and Ruyue to go to the West Ze Region together.
He had thought that the Demon Lord would arrange for him and Ruyue to go to the West Lake Region together.
After all, he had just found the Heaven-cleaving Sword from Sishui with
Ruyue.
During this journey, the two of them had developed a lot of tacit understanding. If they went out to do missions again, it would be even smoother.
However, he did not dare to disobey the Demon Venerables arrangements.
Yes, I am.
MO Ruyue replied.
After finishing the noodles, MO Ruyue stood up and brothers, I wont be apanying you any longer. I have to go and discuss with third senior brother about going to the West Lake Region.
Finally, he turned to Li Zeyan and said,Zeyan, stay here and study the books I left for you.
Sister, go ahead. Zeyan will stay here.
Li Zeyan nodded.
Actually, he really wanted to go to the West Ze Region, but his sister didnt want to take him.
MO Ruyue left the courtyard with Hillghost.
MO Chengfeng and Qi Shaoyu looked at each other and left. They didnt have anything else to say except for the mission.
This was MO Ruyues first time visiting Ye Yunfengs ce.
The room was very clean and tidy. There were almost no decorations or ornaments.
There were only a few wooden blocks in the courtyard.
The first impression it gave people was that it was bleak and deste.
Senior Brother Ye was too low-key.
He was ruthless, didnt talk much, and was quite handsome.
Third Senior Brother, are you there?
MO Ruyue walked into the courtyard but did not see anyone.
He opened his throat and shouted.
A gust of wind blew, and Ye Yunfeng descended from the sky.
Why are you looking for me?
Ye Yunfeng was dressed in a ck suit, and his eyes were ice-cold.
The current Ye Yunfeng was extremely simr to the ck-robed swordsman in novels.
Well, the Demon Lord asked me to apany you to the West Lake Region to find a miracle doctor called Crane Creek.
Yes, I know about this.
Ye Yunfeng replied simply.
MO Ruyue looked at how cold and calm Ye Yufeng was. She couldnt help but wonder if this man would always be this cold.
Iceberg Man had nowhere to run.
Or is this man only cold in the day and babyish at night?
l came here to discuss with Shixiong about when to set off for the Western Ze
Region.
Anytime is fine.
Senior Brother, dont you need to prepare anything?
Theres nothing to prepare.
Alright, alright then.
Junior Sister, when do you want to leave?
How about tomorrow morning?
Sure.
After the simple conversation ended, the atmosphere became awkward.
MO Ruyue tiptoed and waited for a while, but didnt think of anything. She said,Then Ill go back first.
Alright.
Ye Yunfeng responded and watched MO Ruyue leave.
Ming Sihan saw this scene through the mirror and finally let them go.
The scene changed. MO Ruyue had closed the door and was taking off her clothes.
He stared nkly at the screen.
Why did this woman take off her clothes for no reason?
He saw the fair shoulders and
He quickly waved his sleeve, and the image in the mirror disappeared without a trace.
With a slightly red face, he transformed into a dragon and dived into the water.
There seemed to be a wave of heat in his body that needed to be extinguished with cold water.
However, those scenes that shouldnt have appeared kept appearing in his mind.
Damn it, what happened to him?
He silently chanted the Heart Cleansing Mantra in his heart. He couldnt let himself lose control.
MO Ruyue was taking a shower. She had been running around outside for so long, but she had never taken a proper shower.
He had to take a good shower.
After taking a shower, MO Ruyuey on the bed and went to sleep.
That night, she slept peacefully, but a certain someone could not rest no matter what. He could not even focus on meditation.
Early the next morning, Ye Yunfeng came to MO Ruyues courtyard and waited for her.
Good morning, Senior Brother.
MO Ruyue woke up early. Li Zeyan had already prepared noodles for her.
He even packed a bag for Mo Ruyue, which contained some food.
Sister, bring this bag with you when you go out. There are some sweet cakes I made for you in the bag. You can take them out to eat when youre hungry.
Li Zeyan ced the bag on the table.
Hillghosts eyes lit up when he heard about food.
Li Zeyan gave Hillghost a warning look, and Hillghost hid behind him. He couldnt eat it now. He could eat it when he went out.
Brother Zeyan, youre so thoughtful.
Sister, you have to go early ande back early. Be careful on the road.Li Zeyan warned worriedly.
He only hoped that Sister Ruyue would be able toe back soon.
Yes, 1 know.
MO Ruyue nodded solemnly and epted the bag that Li Zeyan had prepared for her.
It was heavy, filled with Li Zeyans concern for her.
Actually, he didnt want to take it because it was too heavy.
However, this was Li Zeyans gift. How could she not bring it?
It was not good not to bring it.
It would be even more convenient if he had a storage ring at this time. She hoped that she could earn a storage ring with her clever mind.
Third Senior Brother, why dont you eat some too?
Zeyans noodles are very delicious.
As she spoke, MO Ruyue had already scooped a bowl of noodles for Ye
Yunfeng.
Ye Yunfeng couldnt refuse and could only say,Thank you.
Although Li Zeyan didnt like his sister giving her noodles to others, he was still very happy to hear her praise his noodles.
Did he be her sisters pride?
He thought to himself..
Chapter 736 - 736: It’s Not Easy to Become a Saintess
Chapter 736 - 736: Its Not Easy to Be a Saintess
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ye Yunfeng ate a few mouthfuls. The taste is indeed very good.
Right? My Zeyan is amazing. His noodles are superb.
A few words of praise made Li Zeyan so happy that he couldnt find his bearings.
If his tail was still around, it would definitely be wagging like a propeller.
His sister was talking about her Zeyan.
Sister, you have toe back early. Ill give you something to eat when youe back. Li Zeyan said happily.
With his sisters praise, he would be happy for many days.
Li Zeyan watched MO Ruyue leave with reluctance in his eyes.
He did not know when his sister would return.
Sensing that his sister had returned here, he had gone through countless hardships toe to her side.
His sister had forgotten everything, so he chose to live in Li Zeyans body and be the new Li Zeyan.
As for the original Li Zeyan, he might nevere back.
From now on, he was Li Zeyan.
He wanted to stay by his sisters side until her return!
Sister, 1 came to your side first this time!
Li Zeyan murmured as he watched MO Ruyues back disappear into the distance.
Xuanling immortal sect
Lan Qi waited for a long time and finally saw the Sect Leader return.
However, the sect leaders expression did not seem too good.
Sect Master, did this trip go smoothly?
Lan Qi asked carefully. Actually, he could already feel the Sect Leaders displeasure, but he still asked with concern.
Didnt the sect leader return with the Heaven-cleaving Sword?
It didnt go well.
The Heaven-cleaving Sword? You didnt find it?
If even the sect leader couldnt find the Heaven-cleaving Sword, then Little Junior Sister and Junior Brother Zhao Xin probably wouldnt have a chance either.
Was the Heaven-cleaving Sword really that hard to find?
Lan Qi could not help but think to himself.
The Heaven-cleaving Sword has already been taken away by the Demonic
Realm Saintess!
Ling Shoumo was curious about the Saintess of the Demon World.
How could the Heaven-cleaving Sword let a devil cultivator of the devil world be its master? One had to know that the sword was nurtured by the souls of all immortal cultivators.
Logically speaking, the Heaven-cleaving Sword would only acknowledge immortal cultivators as its master.
What is it? The Heaven-cleaving Sword had actually fallen into the hands of the Demonic Realm Saintess!
Lan Qis face darkened as he stared at Ling Shoumo in disbelief.
Was the Demonic Saintess really that powerful? He was actually able to snatch the Heaven-cleaving Sword from his masters hands!
Why didnt that damned MO Ruyue bring back any news about the Devil Worlds Saintess?
Master, dont worry. Ill definitely think of a way to get the Heaven-cleaving
Sword back from the Demon World Saintess. t
The Heaven-cleaving Sword did not belong to the Demon Realm.
She did not belong to the Saintess of the Demon World.
On the 15th of next month, he had to find MO Ruyue and ask her to steal the Heaven-cleaving Sword back.
That piece of trash had stayed in the Demon Realm for so long, but he had not sent back any useful information.
Especially since the beginning of this year, there was not a single piece of news.
He wondered what MO Ruyue was doing in the Devil Realm.
Ling Shoumo did not take Lan Qis words to heart.
The Union of Ten Thousand Immortals Conference is about to begin. You should prepare well for the matters of the Union of Ten Thousand Immortals
Conference.
Ling Shoumo instructed.
He had never liked to participate in the Union of Ten Thousand Immortals Conference.
Every year, Xuanling Immortal Sect would obtain the first ce in the Immortal Alliance Conference.
Yes, this disciple understands. This disciple will definitely not disappoint
Master.
Lan Qi replied respectfully.
He knew that his chance to perform had arrived.
The annual meeting of the Union of Ten Thousand Immortals was about to open, and every immortal sect would send people to participate.
At that time, all the immortal sects would be ranked ording to their scores.
He would lead Xuanling Immortal Sect to the top.
You may leave.
Yes.
MO Ruyue and Ye Yunfeng rode their horses and rushed towards the West Lake Region.
She had Ghost Sense and Heaven Severing on her back, and she was dressed in red.
Not long after leaving the mo jie, she and Ye Yunfeng were surrounded by a group of people.
You are the Saintess of the Demon Realm? Wrathful Diaisi?
It was a bearded middle-aged man.
The news of the Demon Worlds Holy Maiden, Aisi, had long spread to all the immortal sects.
MO Ruyue could already feel the pressure from that man.
The other partys strength isnt weak, Ye Yunfeng said in a low voice. Golden Core cultivators, be careful.
Yes. MO Ruyue replied.
Second Chief, its her. She was the one who stole our Spirit Grass.
One of the disciples pointed at MO Ruyue and spoke with a serious expression.
Even if he turned into ashes, he would still remember this woman.
MO Ruyue nced at him and said coldly,No way. The Spirit Grass is only worth a thousand taels of silver. You guys a_re looking for trouble with me for a mere thousand taels of silver?
Forgive me for being blunt, but my meal is worth three thousand taels. What kind of immortal sect are you?
She mocked the people in front of her.
What he said was indeed the truth.
The meal she had at the Divine Wind Restaurant cost her three thousand silver taels.
What did she say?
He did not say anything.
This isnt a matter of a few thousand taels at all. You actually dare to snatch something from our immortal sect. Today, Ill enforce justice on behalf of the heavens and teach you a good lesson, you evil creature of the Demon World! The Second Sect Leader shouted and pulled out the sword in his hand.
It was not easy to capture the Saintess. No matter what, they had to get rid of this Saintess of the Devil World and destroy the prestige of the Devil World! You guys just want to teach me a lesson, thats all. MO Ruyue sneered.
Everything else was nonsense. It was only because she was the saintess of the demon world that he didnt like her and wanted to attack her.
It was not easy to be a saintess.
Since you dare to be the Saintess of the Demon World, you have to be prepared to face all of this sooner orter.
The Second Chief snorted.
Youre right.
MO Ruyue agreed with the Second Chief. She would have to face these things sooner orter.
She slowly pulled out two swords from behind her back with both hands. The des were glowing.
The sect leader looked at the sword in disbelief.
Generally speaking, swords that glowed with a strange light were rtively powerful swords.
You, what sword is your sword?
The Second Chief stuttered as he asked. His eyes were filled with disbelief.
This sword was definitely not simple.
The corners of MO Ruyues mouth curled up slightly as she an iron sword.
This is definitely not an ordinary iron sword!
The Second Chief said with certainty.
He was not blind, so how could he not tell if it was an ordinary iron sword?
If Im not wrong, the swords in your hand are Ghost Thought and Heaven sher.
When the Second Chiefs words came out.
Countless people were shocked. They looked at each other, unable to believe what they had heard.
The Heaven-cleaving Sword was actually in the hands of the Demonic Realm Saintess.
Didnt that sword say that only immortal cultivators could obtain it?
Swords like the Heaven-cleaving Sword and the Ghost Will Sword usually had their own consciousness. They would choose their own masters.
The Heaven-cleaving Sword was formed from the soul of an immortal cultivator. Logically speaking, the person who held the Heaven-cleaving Sword should also be an immortal cultivator.
How could it fall into the hands of a demon saintess?
That was impossible.
Tsk, tsk, tsk, you have good taste. This is indeed Heaven Severing and Ghost Thought.
MO Ruyue didnt want to say it, but she didnt expect this man to see through her.
The Heaven-cleaving Sword was recognized, and MO Ruyue did not hide it.
Since he had already been recognized, he would just face it openly..
Chapter 737 - 737: Are You Looking Down On Him?
Chapter 737 - 737: Are You Looking Down On Him?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The Second Chiefs eyes were filled with greed as he stared at the two swords
in MO Ruyues hands.
If he could obtain these two swords, he would definitely be revered by others in the future.
It was fine if the Ghost Sense was in MO Ruyues hands, but even the Heaven-cleaving Sword was in this womans hands.
What a pity. From tomorrow onwards, Heaven Executioner and Ghost Will will be mine.
The Second Chiefughedcently.
It was as if Ghost Will and Severing the Heavens had already be his.
You seem to be dreaming.
MO Ruyue scolded him and jumped off her horse. She was ready to use the Neb Sword Technique that Ming Sihan wanted her to use against the Golden Core cultivator in front of her.
Golden Core cultivators were very powerful, but Ming Sihan had said that as long as he mastered the Neb Sword Technique, he would be able to defeat Golden Core cultivators.
Although she was not as proficient in the Neb Swordsmanship as she was now, she still had two swords in her hands. She wanted to test the effect and power.
He couldnt just let these two swords rust on his back, right?
A good sword should be used more often.
Only then could their value be shown.
Hillghost was on horseback. It wanted to attack, but its master didnt let it, so it could only watch from the side.
Once something went wrong, it would rush up to help.
Ye Yunfeng silently watched this scene. Seeing that Junior Sister seemed to be brimming with confidence, he didnt n to interfere for now.
It wouldnt be toote to intervene when his junior sister couldnt take it.
The man was a Golden Core cultivator, so he was probably not easy to deal with.
However, he was inexplicably confident in his junior sister.
You overestimate yourself. A mere Aura Refining cultivator like you dares to fight against a Golden Core cultivator like me.
The Second Chief smiled coldly. He felt that the Demonic Saintess in front of him was nothing.
Did he think that he could defeat him just because he had two powerful swords?
Isnt there no other way? If I dont hit you, you wont let me go either. Then I can only give it my all.
MO Ruyue looked helpless.
There was a great disparity in strength, but she could only brace herself and
Fortunately, she still had the brick and the heavenly punishment experience card.
He didnt know when the Heavens Retribution Experience Card would lose its effect. The experience card of catching a white de with bare hands had already lost its effect.
It had to be said that the experience card of catching Bai Ren with bare hands was too weak.
It would be good if it failed earlier.
Then lets begin!
The Second Chief raised his sword and shed at MO Ruyue.
His attacks were very fierce.
MO Ruyue could only use her two swords to block the opponents attack. A mere Aura Refining cultivator is nothing more than this.
The Second Chief had tried one move, but he felt that he could kill the Saintess of the Demon World.
Today, he was going to let the Demonic Realm Saintess die under his sword.
Second Chief, kill the Saintess!
Second Chief, you are unparalleled!
Second Chief, you are unparalleled in the world!
The disciples of the Celestial Gate were already cheering for the Second Chief.
MO Ruyue scolded in a low voice, You guys are so noisy.
Im sorry, shut up!
As soon as he apologized, a rumbling sound could be heard.
Lightning struck down from the sky, and thunder rolled.
The disciples were struck by lightning again.
This was already the second time they had been struck by lightning. What heartless thing had they done? The heavenly lightning didnt let them off. In the blink of an eye, all the chattering disciples fell to the ground.
They were all emitting green smoke.
His body kept twitching, and his eyes rolled back unconscious.
When Ye Yunfeng saw this scene, he subconsciously nced at MO Ruyue.
He felt that this had something to do with his junior sister.
Moreover, it was not the first time he had seen such a thing happen.
Every time something like this happened, his junior sister would be present.
This
The Second Chief looked back at the disciple who had fallen to the ground and was stunned.
What was going on? Why were all his disciples on the ground?
They talked nonsense and got their retribution.
MO Ruyue smiled and felt satisfied.
It made these people chatter endlessly.
Look, even the heavens cant bear to watch.
The Second Chiefs face was gloomy. He didnt think that all of this had anything to do with this woman in front of him.
It was impossible for a mere Aura Refining Saintess to be struck by a lightning bolt.
You witch, I wont take you in.
The Second Chief was very angry. He couldnt care less about his disciple, He had to kill this woman and take the Heaven Executioner and Ghost Sense from her.
This woman was not worthy of two such good swords.
Such a good sword was simply a waste in this womans hands.
Tsk, tsk, tsk. You called me Saintess in front of me, and now you call me a demoness.
Ill say it again, Im the Saintess of the Devil World, YYDPS. You can also call me the Saintess of the Dual Sword Style, its just a code name.
Dont call me Demoness. Im not demonic enough yet. It wont be toote to call me Demoness when Im demonic enough.
MO Ruyue said calmly.
She quietly put away the two swords and took out a te.
The Neb Sword Technique was not easy to disy in front of this man, mainly because she was not familiar enough with the Neb Sword
Technique.
The Second Chief watched as MO Ruyue put the two swords away and took out a brick instead. Was she looking down on him?
Thinking of this, the Second Chief raised his sword and shed at MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue had no choice but to show her brick. This was a brick that was even more powerful than a sword.
The Second Chiefs sword cut the brick and it was directly broken into two pieces.
At the same time, the Second Chief was bounced back by a huge force.
This was the bricks 100% damage reflection ability. If the opponent used a fewyers of force to sh at it, the brick would reflect the same amount of force back.
The Second Chief knelt on the ground with one knee. He covered his chest with his hand and spat out a mouthful of blood.
His entire body was on the verge of copsing. No, impossible, absolutely impossible!
How could a mere Qi Refinement make him bleed?
MO Ruyue was also amazed by the brick. She never thought that the brick would be so powerful.
It seemed that he did not know if this brick had other functions.
As expected of the reward given by the salted fish system. This brick was too awesome.
With your strength, are you worthy of a Golden Core cultivator? Tsk, tsk, tsk, the face of a Golden Core cultivator has beenpletely thrown away by you.
MO Ruyue mocked arrogantly. After all, she had the ability to do so.
The Second Chief looked at MO Ruyue warily.
He didnt know what method this demoness used to heavily injure him!
The strength just now was at least the strength of a Golden Core cultivator.
The woman in front of him was not a Golden Core cultivator at all.
What was going on?
Could it be the brick in the womans hand?
However, that brick was ordinary. It should be a very ordinary brick! It was impossible for him to have such a powerful explosive force.
You, what do you want to do?
The Second Chief opened his eyes wide. He felt that this woman in front of him was up to no good.
Suddenly, a brick came down. The Second Chief cked out and lost consciousness.
Nonsense, of course Im going to knock you out!
MO Ruyue snorted and secretly shook her head.
If this brick was so powerful, wouldnt she be invincible?
Ye Yunfeng watched all of this with an indifferent expression.
He saw MO Ruyue knock out a Golden Core cultivator with a brick.
Could this brick be some kind of magical treasure?
What are you going to do with them next?
The people lying on the ground were all immortals.
Should he kill her or abandon her?
Ye Yunfeng crossed his arms and hugged his sword, waiting for MO Ruyues final result..
Chapter 738 - 738: There’s a Market But No Price
Chapter 738: Theres a Market But No Price
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
What can we do? He couldnt just kill them all, right? Senior Brother, lets go. MO Ruyue had never thought of killing these people.
Just as she was about to mount her horse, MO Ruyue felt that she would be at a disadvantage if she left like this.
These people came to find trouble with her. Although they were all taken down by her, it didnt satisfy her.
After some thought, MO Ruyue stared at the Golden Core cultivator and revealed a strange smile.
Junior Sister, are you still not leaving?
Ye Yunfeng asked indifferently from his horse.
Senior Brother, give me some more time. I cant let theme and find me for nothing.
MO Ruyues face curved into a smile as she walked towards the Golden Core cultivator.
He squatted down and touched the Golden Core cultivators pocket to see if there were any good treasures inside.
Since he was already here, he had to leave something behind.
Moreover, the other party was a Golden Core cultivator. It was impossible for him to not have any treasures on him.
MO Ruyue fumbled around and finally found a round bead on his waist.
What is this?
MO Ruyue held the transparent pearl in her hand and examined it carefully.
It was like a crystal ball.
She had never seen such a thing before, so it should be a valuable treasure.
Ye Yunfeng stared at the crystal ball in MO Ruyues hand and slowly Thats the Immortal Dust Bead.
Whats the use of this bead?
MO Ruyue looked at Ye Yunfeng, her eyes filled with confusion. She didnt know how to use the pearl.
For cultivators, this is indeed a rare treasure. As long as he carried this Immortal Dust Pearl with him, it could assist in the growth of his cultivation.
Ye Yunfeng exined.
However, it was not very useful to people who cultivated the devil.
MO Ruyues eyes instantly lit up when she heard Ye Yunfengs words.
Then this should be very valuable?
These Immortal Dust Beads are generally priced at around ten thousand taels of silver.
Why did his eyes shine like a hungry wolf when he mentioned Junior Sister Qian?
Ye Yunfeng secretly thought in his heart.
MO Ruyue held the Immortal Dust Bead tightly. Ten thousand taels of silver was enough for her to go to the Divine Wind Restaurant three times.
This was even better than the ck Heart Fruit.
Hes a golden core state cultivator, but he only has so little valuable things.
Mo Ruyue didnt forget toin about the Golden Core cultivator lying on the ground after she got the treasure.
In that case, this Golden Core cultivator was even poorer than her.
She had the Seven-Colored Fire Seed and the Ghost Will Sword, the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
It wasnt that she didnt have money, but she couldnt bear to sell all these treasures.
Senior brother, lets continue on our way.
MO Ruyue said with a smile.
Yes.
Ye Yunfeng responded, his hand holding the reins as he turned the horse around.
Nio Ruyue followed closely behind.
When the Second Chief woke up, he found that he was still alive. He secretly sighed that he had actually managed to save his life.
However, he felt that something was missing from his body.
He searched his body and realized that the Immortal Dust Bead that had been with him was gone.
Damn it, who stole my Immortal Dust Pearl?
The 2nd Head roared in exasperation. He had obtained the Immortal Dust Bead with great difficulty.
The only valuable treasure on him.
He angrily looked at the group of disciples behind him. Those disciples had not fully awakened.
So he rushed over and kicked them all awake. Tell me, did you steal my Immortal Dust Pearl? That was the only treasure he had.
The disciples were all stunned. They did not know who had taken the Immortal Dust Pearl.
Second Chief, we dont know anything.
Second Chief, please calm down. The Fairy Dust Bead must have been stolen by the Demon Realm Saintess.
They had all been struck unconscious by lightning. How could they know what had happened?
Only then did the Second Chief think of the Saintess of the Demon World. His face revealed an angry expression, Damn the Saintess of the Demon World. I must kill her.
He had even snatched away his treasure.
The other disciples shut their mouths and did not speak.
At this moment, MO Ruyue and Ye Yunfeng were staying at an inn in the city.
Without the Demon Venerables control, MO Ruyue could do whatever she wanted.
Even Senior Brother Ye Yunfeng wouldnt ask too much about her matters.
However, she still had to bring Ye Yunfeng along if she wanted to go to the Treasure Gathering Pavilion.
Senior Brother, are you asleep?
MO Ruyue asked cautiously from outside the door.
The door creaked open.
Ye Yunfeng appeared in her line of sight.
Whats the matter?
Ye Yunfengs two short words didnt show his impatience. He just didnt like to talk too much.
Nothing much, MO Ruyue giggled. I just wanted to ask if Senior Brother would like to take a walk with me. Then Ill treat you to a meal.
She looked at Ye Yunfeng expectantly, hoping that Shixiong wouldnt reject her so heartlessly.
Sure.
Ye Yunfeng agreed. His intuition told him that things werent that simple.
But he still agreed first.
Ruyue probably did not have anything important to do.
Thus, MO Ruyue brought Third Senior Brother Ye Yunfeng out of the door and headed straight for the Treasure Gathering Pavilion.
She had to quickly sell the Fairy Dust Pearl on her to prevent any more trouble.
As long as the money was in his hands, everything would be fine.
Ye Yunfeng raised his head and nced at the signboard of the Treasure Gathering Pavilion. His brows furrowed slightly. He didnt know why Ruyue had brought him here.
The Treasure Gathering Pavilion here seemed to be muchrger than the Treasure Gathering Pavilions in other ces, so there were naturally more peopleing here.
What are you doing here?
Ye Yunfeng asked in a low voice.
Nio Ruyue smiled slyly. Of course Im here to sell treasures.
She quickly found a shop assistant who was quite friendly to her.
Miss, are you here to buy treasures? Is there any treasure in our Treasure Gathering Pavilion that can catch your eyes?
The shop assistant smiled and asked.
MO Ruyue took out the Immortal Dust Bead from her bag and here to sell my treasure. Show me how much this treasure is worth.
The shop assistants eyes lit up when he saw it.
This was the Immortal Dust Bead.
It was also a rare treasure.
Miss, wait a moment. Ill call our shopkeeper over.
Alright, Ill wait.
MO Ruyue watched the waiter leave.
And sell the Immortal Dust Bead?
Ye Yunfeng raised his eyebrows slightly.
He didnt quite understand MO Ruyues actions.
Yeah, its useless to keep it with me anyway. Why dont I sell it and get a few more dors?
As soon as he finished speaking, he saw the shop assistant bring their manager over.
The shopkeeper nced at Ye Feng and MO Ruyue with a kind smile on his face.
Who wants to sell the Immortal Dust Bead?
The shopkeeper asked with a smile.
MO Ruyue took out the Immortal Dust Bead and ?said,I want to sell the
Immortal Dust Bead.
She did not want to beat around the bush. She would leave after getting the money.
The Immortal Dust Pearl is not bad. Treasure, I will take it back for ten thousand taels.
The shopkeeper asked.
Sold, sold.
The price that Ye Yunfeng had mentioned before was also around 10,000 taels.
Since the shopkeeper was offering a simr price, he would sell it.
Anyway, she was not at a disadvantage.
The shopkeeper immediately sent someone to retrieve the silver notes. His gaze fell on the two swords on MO Ruyues back. The two swords did not look like ordinary iron swords.
l wonder what other treasures you have on you that you want to sell?
Im not selling anything else, but may I ask, how much is a seven-colored fire seed worth?
MO Ruyues eyes shed with curiosity.
The seven-colored fire seed was given to her by the Demon Lord.
So far, she had not used the seven-colored fire seed.
The seven-colored fire seed is priceless. If I had to give a price, it would be at least five hundred thousand taels. The shopkeeper stretched out his palm..
Chapter 739 - 739: Forbidden from Talking About Love
Chapter 739: Forbidden from Talking About Love
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The Seven-Colored Fire Seed was one of the best treasures for the pill refiners.
However, to people who did not refine pills, it was just an ordinary fire seed. Countless alchemists dreamed of obtaining a seven-colored fire seed.
500,000 taels sounded like an astronomical figure to MO Ruyue.
Even after such a long time, he only had ten to twenty thousand taels of silver on him.
Five hundred thousand taels of silver, she had to struggle for a long time.
10,000 Immortal Dust Beads.
The seven-colored fire seed was so valuable. Should she sell it?
After thinking about it, she still couldnt bear to sell the seven-colored fire seed.
From your question, could it be that you have a seven-colored fire seed? The shopkeeper stared at MO Ruyue.
If he could obtain the seven-colored fire seed, he would immediately auction it off. At that time, the price would definitely be even higher.
A conservative price could be auctioned off for at least eight hundred thousand taels.
There were many poor people in this world, but there were also many rich people.
l dont have any Seven-Colored Fire Seed on me. Ive only heard of it asionally and asked out of curiosity.
Nio Ruyue would never admit that the Seven-Colored Fire Seed was with her.
He was afraid of attracting unnecessary trouble.
Alright then. the shopkeeper said regretfully.
His gaze suddenly fell on the mountain ghost in MO Ruyues arms. What is this? Is it a pet, a squirrel?
Uh, its not a squirrel.
MO Ruyue looked down at the mountain ghost in her arms. It did look like a squirrel, but it was not.
As for what it was, she wouldnt tell the shopkeeper in front of her.
At this moment, the shop assistant came over with the silver notes.
The shopkeeper looked at it and then handed over the banknote in his hand.Miss, look, its a total of 10,000 taels.
Thank you, shopkeeper.
MO Ruyue epted the ten thousand taels of silver. There was nothing much to see. It was just a banknote with ten thousand taels written on it.
l still have something to do, so Ill be leaving first.
After getting the money, there was no need for her to stay here.
Giving Ye Yunfeng a look, Ye Yunfeng nodded slightly, indicating that he understood.
Thus, the two of them left the Treasure Gathering Pavilion.
The shopkeeper returned to the room. There was a young man in the room. The man was wearing a pink robe. There was a faint smile on his seductive face. It was impossible to tell whether he was male or female,
Master, just now I saw ady with a mountain ghost beside her. I dont know if that mountain ghost followed thatdy willingly or was forced to follow ner:? the shopkeeper said carefully.
Has that girl left?
The mans voice seemed to carry a charm.
l just left.
Alright, I understand. You can leave.
Yes, Master.
After the shopkeeper left, the man stood up and disappeared from the room.
MO Ruyue brought Ye Yunfeng and Hillghost to eat something delicious.
This time, she first asked about the price of the restaurant she went to. It was not as ridiculous as the Divine Wind Restaurant, so she was relieved.
He didnt want to earn so much money for nothing.
It was also quite difficult to retrieve it from others.
Senior brother, you can order whatever you want to eat. Its my treat today.
She had already treated several senior brothers to a meal.
Gui Gui, what do you want to eat?
Hillghosts ears twitched excitedly when he heard that he wanted to eat.
It could eat anything. If it was meat, the more the better.
While eating, Hillghost seemed to sense a familiar aura.
There should be its kind nearby.
It looked up at the food on the table. Forget it, it didnt care. It should eat first.
Ye Yunfeng looked at MO Ruyues undignified manner of eating and couldnt help but say,Eat slowly.
Dont choke.
MO Ruyue choked on her words.
Ye Yunfeng quickly stood up and came to MO Ruyues side, patting her back.
Devil World
Ming Sihan felt ufortable all over. He wanted to call MO Ruyue over to practice her swordsmanship, but he suddenly remembered that MO Ruyue had been sent out to do a mission.
MO Ruyues appearance kept appearing in his mind.
What is this woman doing now?
Ming Sihan muttered to himself. In the end, he couldnt resist the loneliness. He waved his sleeve and a mirror appeared in front of him.
MO Ruyue and Ye Yunfengs actions were extremely intimate.
He jumped up from the couch. The two of them were on a mission, so why
were they so intimate?
Therefore, Ming Sihan called MO Chengfeng over overnight.
They had specially issued a rule that forbade men and women from falling in love in the Devil Realm. Those who vited it would have their entire lifes cultivation crippled and be expelled from the Devil Realm.
He would never be able to step into the Demon Realm.
He hated it when others acted intimately in front of him.
This rule should have been announced earlier, but he had forgotten about it.
Add this rule to this venerable self. Do you understand?
Ming Sihan said coldly, his eyes filled with anger.
The image of Ye Yunfeng and MO Ruyue being intimate was still in his mind.
Ye Yunfeng, youre really good at pretending.
He thought that this guy really didnt have any romantic feelings.
He was usually so cold to everyone.
Your subordinate understands.
MO Chengfeng was actually very puzzled as to why the Demon Venerable would suddenly announce such a strange rule in the middle of the night.
This really made people curious.
However, as a subordinate, he did not dare to casually inquire about the Demon Venerable.
If theres nothing else, you can go down first.
Yes, Demon Venerable.
MO Chengfeng turned around and left.
The Demon Lord hade to find him at night for this matter.
The next day, this rule was known to all the people of the Demon Realm.
Everyone felt that it was a little strange. Why would a well-known Demon Lord issue such a rule?
Jing Xichen and Baili Xijian returned to the Demon Realm. Because there would be an assessment in the Demon Realm soon, they needed toe back to participate in this assessment.
When they heard the rules announced by the Demon Venerable, the two of them felt incredulous.
In the Cool Breeze Pavilion, a red and a white figure sat face to face. One was fiery and mboyant, while the other was gentle and elegant.
Why did the Demon Lord announce this rule for no reason?
Baili Xis pupils shrank when he saw this. His eyes were filled with curiosity as he held the white chess piece in his hand.
He sized up the chessboard mountain and ced a piece.
Perhaps only the Demon Lord knows.
The corners of Jing Xichens mouth curled up. A ck chess piece fell and broke the encirclement of Baili Xijian.
Both sides suffered losses on the chessboard.
Seeing that his expression was calm, Baili Xi hesitated for a moment before cing a chess piece.
He ??????? really cant understand the Demon Lord anymore.
If you and I can understand the Demon Venerable, he wont be the Demon
Venerable.
Jing Xichen smiled and said lightly.
At this moment, a man in a purple robe appeared at the Clear Breeze Pavilion.
Senior Brother Mo.!
Senior Brother Mo.
Jing Xichen and Baili Xi shouted at Nio Chengfeng when they saw the two put down their chess pieces.
When did you guyse back?
Nio Chengfeng asked casually as he looked down at the battle on the chessboard.
l just came back.
Jing Xichen replied. The three of them sat down together and chatted about the Demon Realm and the outside world.
After chatting for a long time, Jing Xichen stretched and asked faintly,Why dont I see Junior Sister Ruyue?!
In the past, Junior Sister Ruyue had been very low-key and never spoke to them. At that time, he thought that Junior Sister Ruyue did not like to talk or interact with them.
Therefore, he had never taken the initiative to look for Junior Sister Ruyue.
But now, Junior Sister Ruyue was very cheerful and was willing to talk to them.
He was still not used to not seeing Junior Sister Ruyue in the Demon Realm..
Chapter 740 - 740: It’s Easy to Make a fool of Yourself When Drinking
Chapter 740: Its Easy to Make a fool of Yourself When Drinking
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Speaking of this, MO Chengfengs face instantly darkened.
Baili Xi and Jing Xichen raised their eyebrows slightly.
Could it be that something major had happened to Junior Sister Ruyue while they were away from the Demon Realm?
From their conversation just now, he knew that the Heaven-cleaving Sword was with Junior Sister Ruyue.
From this, it could be seen that the Demon Lord had high hopes for Junior Sister Ruyue.
At the very least, they had never seen the Demon Lord treat any Saintess so well.
The Heaven-cleaving Sword and Ghost Sense were given to Junior Sister Ruyue.
Junior Sister Ruyues weight in the Demon Lords heart was naturally not ordinary.
Ruyue went out with Third Junior Brother.
MO Chengfeng picked up the tea on the table and took a sip.
The taste of this tea was still so familiar. It must have been brewed by Jing Xichen himself.
Where are Ruyue and Senior Brother Ye going?
Jing Xichen lowered his eyes and did not continue ying chess.
The chess game has been ruined
He went to the West Ze Region to look for the divine doctor He Xi.
Why are you looking for the divine doctor He Xi? Is Junior Sister Ruyue sick? Jing Xichen turned his head and stared at MO Chengfeng.
Although he was an expert in poison, he could still treat ordinary difficult illnesses.
What kind of illness did he need to go to the miracle doctor of the West Region, He Xi?
Not to mention the fact that the West Ze Region was rtively far away, the divine doctor He Xi was not someone who could be found just because he said so. Moreover, even if he found him, it would be useless. That divine doctor He Xi had a strange temper and was probably unwilling to rush from the West Ze Region to the Demon Realm.
MO Chengfeng opened the fan in his hand and fanned himself gently. Its not that Junior Sister Ruyue is sick, but that the Demon Lord is not feeling well. Thats why he asked Ruyue to go to the West Lake Region to find Miracle Doctor He Xi and Third Senior Brother to apany her.
Is the demon unwell?
Baili Xi saw a look of disbelief on his handsome face.
The demon was like a god in their eyes, so why would he be unwell?
Jing Xichen felt that this matter wasnt simple,
Actually, this rule that the Demon Lord issued this time is very strange. Is the current Demon Lord really the Demon Lord of the past?
He was very suspicious.
The three of them remained silent and did not continue speaking. They could not personally ask the Demon Venerable about this matter.
He could only hide the question in his heart.
MO Ruyue treated Ye Yunfeng to a meal that cost only fifty taels, and he was especially full.
Senior Brother, lets go back.
After paying, MO Ruyue didnt care about the activities in the night market. She just wanted to go back and have a good rest.
She had two goals in life. One was to earn money, and the other was to offend her superiors and be the new Demon Lord!
Men might betray women, but money and power would never betray them.
Alright.
Ye Yunfeng replied indifferently. MO Ruyues cheeks were flushed red and she looked a little drunk.
MO Ruyue had only had two sses of wine, which showed that she was not a good drinker.
On the way back, Ye Yunfeng followed behind MO Ruyue the entire time, preparing to strike when necessary.
Fortunately, MO Ruyue sessfully returned to the inn. Senior Brother, see you tomorrow.
MO Ruyue burped and brought Hillghost back to her room.
Ye Yunfeng only turned around and left when he saw the door close.
Junior Sister had eaten a lot tonight.
He had never seen a girl who could eat so well.
He had a big appetite.
MO Ruyue fell asleep on the bed without even taking off her shoes.
Hillghost was also lying on the table, preparing to sleep. Suddenly, he felt a familiar aura approaching.
Hillghost opened his round eyes and nced at MO Ruyue who was lying on the bed. After a moment of hesitation, he jumped out of the window.
The small figure jumped onto the roof in a few steps.
A figure in a pink robe stood on the roof facing the wind, carrying with it the fragrance of cherry blossoms.
Her ck hair fluttered in the wind.
Hillghost squeaked at the back of the figure.
The figure slowly turned around, and there was a trace of coldness on his androgynous face.
Little Mountain Ghost, why dont you stay in the mountains and follow the humans? Were you forced or willing?
The man looked down at Hillghost condescendingly.
It would take a long time for such a small mountain ghost to transform into a human.
The little mountain ghost squeaked in response.
Ordinary people would definitely not understand what Hillghost was saying, but the man in front of him understood.
Interesting. You actually followed that woman voluntarily. Is that woman really that good?
The mans beautiful eyes shed with curiosity.
There was actually a Mountain Ghost who was willing to follow a human woman, and it was a demonic cultivator.
What was so special about that woman?
You said that there are other demonic beasts beside that woman? And very powerful?
The mans expression gradually turned solemn.
In Nine Regions, apart from mountain ghosts who had experienced hundreds of thousands of years and could transform into human appearance, could there be other species that could transform into human appearance?
This made him a little curious.
Little Mountain Ghost, dont be sold off and still count the money.
Oh, youre not willing to listen to my advice?
The man couldnt help but smile.
Hearing the little mountain ghosts words, the mans heart was filled with curiosity about that woman.
Alright, you can go back first.
If they were fated, they would definitely meet again in the future.
The man watched the little mountain ghost leave.
He looked up at the moonlight in the sky and felt that the moonlight was very gentle.
He didnt expect that there would be a human in this world that Hillghost was willing to follow.
The next day, MO Ruyue woke up from her dream, feeling dizzy.
When she opened her eyes, she realized that she had gone to bed without even taking off her shoes.
Naturally, he was wearing his clothes.
She really had to give in to herself.
However, this was also good. He did not have to put on clothes and shoes in the morning.
It saved time and effort.
Gui Gui, how could you sleep more than me?
MO Ruyue stood up and the little mountain ghost on the table shouted.
This fellow was sleeping too soundly.
The sun did not wake it up.
Hillghost slowly opened his eyes and rubbed them with his small hands, as if he was still half-asleep.
Mo Ruyue was puzzled by the appearance of the Mountain Ghost. Did this little fellow really have the ability to fight?
It did not seem to have anybat power.
Knock, knock, knock. Someone knocked on the door.
Junior Sister, are you up? Im up. Ill wait for you downstairs.
Alright.
After a few short sentences, Ye Yunfeng went downstairs.
Mo Ruyue simply washed up and then brought Hillghost downstairs. She still carried Ghost Sense and Heaven Destroyer on her back.
Did you sleep wellst night?
Ye Yunfeng noticed that MO Ruyue seemed a little out of sorts, so he asked.
MO Ruyue regained her senses. Im fine.
Last night, she went to bed without taking off her clothes and shoes. Of course, she would not tell Ye Yunfeng about these things.
It would be a little awkward to say these things.
In the future, it was better to drink less. It was easy to make a fool of yourself if you drank.
Drinking a few cups is also prudent.
After breakfast, they continued their journey.
In the next few days, they traveled day and night, moving through the stars and the moon.
They finally arrived at the border of the Western Region on the morning of the third day.
The mountains and rivers were beautiful, and the birds were singing and the flowers were fragrant.
In the distance, there were cliffs and mountains standing in the water. The surface of the water reflected the light of the morning sun. The waves were jagged, and there were fishermen fishing. The wind blew over with a hint of coldness.
The scenery here is so beautiful.
MO Ruyue couldnt help butment that it was very suitable for retirement.
It was no wonder that Miracle Doctor He Xi had chosen the West Lake Region. The environment here was too good..
Chapter 741 - 741: Who Are You Looking Down On With 100,000 Silver?
Chapter 741: Who Are You Looking Down On With 100,000 Silver?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ye Yunfengs dark eyes carried a trace of depth, and he was unmoved by the beautiful scenery here.
There was aplicated look in his eyes.
Thend here is vast and the scenery is beautiful, but there are also many dangers. After rushing for a few days, you should be tired. Find an inn to stay and rest for a day.
MO Ruyue looked at Ye Yunfeng in surprise. This was the first time this man had said such a long sentence.
If he could speak simply, he should.
As expected, a beautiful environment would improve ones mood. When one was in a good mood, they would naturally talk more.
Alright.
MO Ruyue immediately agreed.
Actually, it was quite good toe out and do missions. It was like a vacation.
It was his first time in the Western Ze Region, so he had to have some fun.
She had heard that it was very dangerous here, but so far, she did not feel any danger.
The mountains and rivers here were beautiful.
They found a small town and stayed in an inn.
There seemed to be something wrong with the people in the small town, always sizing her and Ye Yunfeng up with their eyes.
Sure enough, she and Ye Yunfeng were attacked that night.
She has the Heaven-cleaving Sword on her. Its the Saintess of the Demon
World, Aisi. Kill her!
We cant let her off!
Those people recognized MO Ruyues identity and immediately attacked her.
Killing the Saintess of the Demon World would give him money, and he could even get the Heaven-cleaving Sword from her. This woman was a popr passerby.
Am I that famous now?
Mo Ruyue looked incredulous. There was actually someone who could recognize her at a nce.
He even recognized the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Take a good look for yourself. This is your bounty! The other party threw a bounty warrant at MO Ruyues feet.
MO Ruyues lips twitched when she saw it.
Im not that ugly!
She didnt know which soul painter had made her portrait too ugly.
Cant you show her some respect?
Thats you, and thats the two swords.
The man said proudly.
Just like that, he could recognize her even if she turned into ashes.
MO Ruyue nced at the arrest warrant again. She knew how these people recognized her.
It was because of the two swords on his back.
Her sword was in the shape of an X on her back, so it was easy to recognize
her.
Nowadays, there were not many cultivators who carried two swords on their backs.
So, no matter where I go, Ill be recognized, right?
MO Ruyue asked gloomily.
This was not good.
Nonsense, no matter where you go, everyone will not let you off!
After saying that, those people raised their swords and attacked MO Ruyue fiercely.
MO Ruyue stepped back.
These were all Aura Refining and Foundation Building cultivators, so they didnt need to use bricks or Heavens Wrath Cards.
He reached out to pull out the two swords from his back. In the night, the two swords were glowing.
One was ck and the other was white.
ck and white reflected each other.
Everyone wont let me go? That will depend on your abilities.
MO Ruyues lips curled into a deep smile. She wanted to let these people test the power of the Heaven-cleaving Divine Sense and the Ghost Will.
She flew into the air and nced at the people below with two swords in her hands.
Two sword winds shot out like arrows from a bow towards those people.
With lightning speed, he directly cut off the iron swords in the other partys hands. Two people fell on the spot and died.
When the others saw theirpanion fall, they were stunned. This woman was so powerful.
To be precise, the sword in her hand was powerful.
He had actually killed theirpanion in one move.
When Ye Yunfeng saw this scene, he was slightly stunned for a moment.
Although Ruyues cultivation was rtively low, the weapon in her hand was very powerful.
If his cultivation was also high, then the weapon in his hand would be better used, and his strength would be even more terrifying!
Tsk, tsk, tsk, you guys only have this little ability and you dare toe out and embarrass yourselves?
Mo Ruyue sneered coldly.
She held the two swords with both hands and nodded slightly. There was no warmth in her eyes.
They looked down at the people below as if they were looking at ants.
Yes, she was only a small Aura Refining cultivator, but she held a very powerful sword in her hand.
Before I start a massacre, Ill give you a chance to leave. Otherwise, I can only sacrifice your lives to the heavens!
MO Ruyue said faintly, her voice calm.
Those people were originally arrogant, but when they saw theirrades die, they became afraid.
One by one, they quickly fled the scene. This woman was too powerful. They were no match for her!
The battle ended just like that.
Ye Yunfengs eyes were filled with affirmation, his recognition of MO Ruyues strength.
It was very rare for someone like Ruyue to defeat a Foundation Establishment Cultivator while cultivating Qi.
Niost importantly, the equipment in Ru Yues hands was too powerful.
Without such powerful equipment, it was almost impossible for a Qi
Refinement cultivator to defeat a Foundation Establishment cultivator.
Moreover, the Demon Lord seemed to have personally taught Junior Sister Ruyue a set of Neb Sword Technique. The Neb Sword Technique was powerful because of its explosive power. If he could master it all, it was not impossible for a low-level cultivator to defeat a high-level cultivator.
All in all, Junior Sister Ruyue had a bright future ahead of her.
This group of trash, I thought they were very powerful, but this is it?
MO Ruyue couldnt help but shake her head. She was very disappointed with these people.
He nced at the corpse on the ground without any sympathy.
When they wanted to kill her, they had to be prepared to be killed. He was asking for his own death and was not worthy of sympathy at all.
Junior Sister, your strength has improved again. Ye Yunfeng couldnt help but say.
Junior Sister Ruyues strength was unquestionable.
Hehe, its good, its good.
MO Ruyue smiled modestly. It was because her equipment was amazing.
Of course, she also knew that her cultivation had improved a lot. However, if she wanted to break through to the foundation establishment stage, she might still need to experience more.
Senior Brother, lets leave this ce.
The sky was already dark, but there was a battle here. She couldnt stay here, so she had to leave.
It was time for her to disguise herself.
Yes, alright.
Ye Yunfeng immediately agreed.
Thus, the two of them left the town.
MO Ruyue had also put on a disguise. She hung the two swords on her back on her waist and changed her outfit.
When she reached the next city, there were fewer people paying attention to her.
When she passed by the wanted poster, her portrait was still hanging on it.
So this is the Saintess of the Demon World.
It should be very powerful. Look at this. It clearly says that as long as you can kill the Demon Realm Saintess, you can get a reward of 100,000 taels.
Mo Ruyues mouth twitched slightly. She stood in front of the arrest warrant and said slowly, Killing a Devil Realm Saintess for only 100,000 taels, isnt this money too little?
She was the Saintess of the Demon Realm, after all. Was her worth worth just a hundred thousand taels?
He was looking down on her too much.
The Heaven-cleaving Sword and the Ghost Thought Sword were both priceless.
Therefore, her life was not even worth a sword.
This realization hurt MO Ruyue.
100,000 taels is not a small amount. Youngdy, Im afraid you dont have any concept of money.
Yeah, killing a Demonic Saint is about 100,000 taels of silver.
When the people around them heard MO Ruyues words, they could not help but look at her.
This woman was quite good-looking, much more good-looking than the demon saintess.
Personally, I think its worth at least a million taels. The Holy Maiden of the Demon Realm is not an ordinary person.
MO Ruyue said faintly.. Who was he looking down on with a hundred thousand taels of silver?
Chapter 742 - 742: Where Are You Going?
Chapter 742 - 742: Where Are You Going?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Its just a small demon saintess. A reward of 100,000 taels is already a lot. If you dont like it, dont kill the demon saintess.
Hmph, you want me to sell my life for such a small amount of money? Youre simply daydreaming. Only a fool would ept this arrest warrant.
Mo Ruyue opened her mouth disdainfully.
She felt that she, the Saintess of the Demon World, was being looked down upon.
She was a popr person beside the Demon Lord in the Demon World and was even the Demon Lords personal disciple. In these peoples mouths, she was actually just a small Demon World Saintess.
Who are you looking down on?
When the people around her heard MO Ruyues words, they stood up and lectured her. Youngdy, you cant say that. You dont need this hundred thousand taels of silver, but there will naturally be others who need this hundred thousand taels of silver. One hundred thousand taels of silver is enough to buy a storage ring.
Moreover, that Holy Maiden of the Demonic Tribes is only a neer who has just taken up her position. It is really not enough evidence. 1 heard that she is only a small Qi Refiner
As he finished speaking, the guyughed loudly.
It seemed like a very funny joke.
MO Ruyue snorted coldly and turned to leave.
How infuriating. Her worth was only 100,000 taels.
Shes a pretty girl, and shes too bright. She doesnt care about 100,000 taels of silver, but I do.
Exactly. I also want 100,000 taels of silver. Unfortunately, my strength is too low. I guess I can only think about 100,000 taels of silver.
Everyone looked at the portrait on the arrest warrant and could only sigh inwardly.
100,000 taels was a lot of money, but it had nothing to do with them.
MO Ruyue walked up to Ye Yunfeng and said to him dejectedly,Senior brother, lets find an inn to rest?
Alright.
Ye Yunfeng was always so concise andprehensive, as if afraid of saying one more word.
However, it was also quite good. When she wanted to be quiet, Ye Yunfeng would definitely be quiet.
Those people really look down on me. Am I only worth a mere 100,000 taels? MO Ruyue said sadly.
Ye Yunfeng had not expected that MO Ruyue would not be recognized even when standing in front of the arrest warrant.
It could be seen that the wanted poster did not look like it.
Dont worry about those things. Well enter the water source of the West Lake Region tomorrow after resting well. Miracle Doctor He Xi often appears there, so we can go there and try our luck.
Ye Yunfeng consoled MO Ruyue.
He did not quite understand why Ruyue was so conflicted about this.
The low price meant that the danger was small. Wasnt that a good thing?
The higher the price, the greater the danger, and the more likely it was to endanger ones life.
Alright then.
Mo Ruyue could only agree.
That night, MO Ruyue was dreaming when she was suddenly woken up by the mountain ghost.
Whats wrong, Ghostly?
MO Ruyue opened her eyes in a daze, feeling that she had not slept enough.
It was pitch ck outside.
Squeak
MO Ruyue did not understand what the mountain ghost was saying, but when she saw the mountain ghost pointing outside, she was rmed.
There must be some kind of danger, which was why Hillghost would react like
There was bound to be a demon in an abnormal situation. Mountain ghosts were usually quite normal.
Could it be that someone was here to kill her again?
However, she was not recognized when she stood in front of the arrest warrant during the day. Why would someonee to assassinate her now?
MO Ruyues eyes darkened as she brought along Heaven ying and Ghost Sense.
Soon, she heard the sounds of fighting next door.
The person next door was Third Senior Brother Ye Yunfeng!
Could it be that those people came for Ye Yunfeng?
Just as MO Ruyue was hesitating whether she should go and help, she saw the wall crumble and a man in ck fell to the ground.
Inside the room, Ye Yunfeng was fighting with a few other men in ck.
These men in ck seemed to be quite powerful.
Ye Yunfeng seemed to be having a hard time dealing with it.
She walked forward to help, but a vase flew over and she dodged it agilely.
l almost got hit.
She muttered to herself and heaved a sigh of relief.
A miserable cry sounded.
Mo Ruyue lowered her head and realized that she had stepped on someone elses manhood.
Seeing the other party in excruciating pain, MO Ruyue quickly dodged her foot.
S-Sorry, I didnt mean it!
MO Ruyue really wanted to apologize, so she quickly apologized.
With a loud rumble, a bolt of lightning struck the ck-robed man.
The dark room instantly became bright as day. The lightning emitted mes and was extinguished in an instant.
After suffering a double blow, the ck-clothed mans eyes rolled back and he breathed hisst.
Dead, dead!
MO Ruyue was stunned. She didnt know what to do when she saw the man in ck.
When the other men in ck saw this scene, they became even angrier.
Two of them surrounded MO Ruyue and shed at her with their gleaming swords.
Dont kill me. I really didnt do it on purpose. It was an ident.
MO Ruyue exined, but the two men in ck did not listen to her.
His moves were swift and fierce, as if he wanted to kill MO Ruyue to vent his hatred.
MO Ruyue wanted to cry.
Im sorry, Im sorry. I apologize to you!
With that, two rumbling thunders sounded. Soon, the two men in ck who were chasing after MO Ruyue were also struck. Theyy on the ground, motionless.
Ye Yunfeng was still entangled with the ck clothed person. The other partys strength was very strong.
At this moment, a few more men in ck came over. The other partys reinforcements had arrived.
The leader shot a silver needle over.
In the darkness, the tiny silver needles couldnt be seen at all, so Ye Yunfeng was hit by the silver needles and instantly fell to the ground.
The other party wanted to use the silver needles to deal with MO Ruyue, but he was quickly stopped by Hillghost.
In terms of speed, a mere silver needle could notpare to it.
However, it did not know how to deal with the situation in front of it. No one gave it instructions, so it could only instinctively protect its master.
Mo Ruyue still did not know what had happened. In the dark environment, she could only see a group of men in ck taking Ye Yunfeng away.
She immediately wanted to chase after him, but she saw the other party throw out two smoke grenades. She was enveloped in a cloud of white smoke. The white smoke choked her eyes and made her have no choice but to stop. By the time the white smoke dispersed, the men in ck were long gone.
Even the corpses in the room had disappeared.
The mountain ghost came in front of MO Ruyue and squeaked a few times.
He seemed to be saying what to do now.
MO Ruyue took a deep breath and returned to her room. She then lit the oilmp on the table.
Only then did he see that the room was already in a mess.
Why dont I run away, lest the shopkeeper asks me forpensation. I didnt break it alone.
MO Ruyue muttered to herself.
Other than the big hole on the roof, she didnt do anything else.
Thus, MO Ruyue grabbed the mountain ghost and fled the inn overnight.
In fact, the shopkeeper had long known that such a hugemotion had happened at night. However, in order to survive, the shopkeeper did not dare to go out and see what had happened.
That night, MO Ruyue wandered outside alone again.
She felt very sad. She hadnt slept well for the past two nights.
This was even worse than when he went to Sishui.
Now that Ye Yunfeng had also disappeared, he didnt know who those people were, or what their purpose was in taking Ye Yunfeng away.
What should she do next?
Should he return to the Demon Realm to ask for reinforcements first? Or should he go find Ye Yunfeng alone? Or he could ignore Ye Yunfeng and go to the water source to try his luck and find Miracle Doctor He Xi.
She was now in a dilemma..
Chapter 743 - 743: Assassin Organization
Chapter 743 - 743: Assassin Organization
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Hillghost, what should I do next?
MO Ruyue walked down the street, but there was no one there.
There shouldnt be anyone more miserable than her, right? Sleeping on the streets in the middle of the night.
Squeak
Hillghost jumped down and erged its body.
You can actually grow bigger.
MO Ruyue revealed a surprised expression.
She knew that mountain ghosts could grow bigger, but she didnt know that they could be this big.
Such a big mountain ghost could even carry her. Hillghost also gestured for MO Ruyue to sit on his back.
In that case, I wont stand on ceremony.
MO Ruyue rubbed her palms and sat on Hillghosts back.
Hillghost, can you bring me to Third Senior Brother?
She asked curiously.
Hillghost nodded. Of course he could.
You can?
Actually, MO Ruyue was just trying her luck.
She didnt expect Hillghost to help her. MO Ruyue was overjoyed.
This mountain ghost was really a treasure.
MO Ruyue thought happily.
Hillghost closed its eyes and sniffed. It could find those people by relying on their remaining scent.
Of course, there was a time limit. Once it exceeded four hours, it would no longer be able to smell those peoples auras.
It had not been more than four hours since those people left, so it could rely on their aura to find their location.
Fiendish Feather Pavilion
When Ye Yunfeng opened his eyes, he found that his limbs and body were bound by thick ck chains.
He used his cultivation to try to break free, but it was useless.
He looked around calmly. This should be a dungeon.
There were no prisoners around. He was the only one locked up here.
Suddenly, as if some mechanism had been activated, the iron chain made a cracking sound.
Ye Yunfeng was slowly lifted up.
His cold face was solemn.
He had sword-like eyebrows and starry eyes, a high nose bridge, and wless fair skin.
At this moment, the door opened and a man walked in.
The man looked exactly like him, but the sinister look in his eyes was even stronger.
The man was no different from Ye Yunfeng, and both of them were wearing the same ck clothes.
Its you!
Ye Yunfeng wasnt too surprised, as if he had already guessed all of this.
The corners of the mans mouth curled up slightly as he sneered. It seems that you have already expected all of this to happen.
Ye Yunfeng didnt say anything, his eyes were even more cold.
Ye Yunfeng, you shouldnt have returned to this ce.
If youe back, I wont be able to live anymore. Why did youe back?
Keeping you alive is also a long night. You shadow should die!
The mans voice became somewhat sharp, and he was very disgusted with Ye Yunfengs appearance.
I never thought ofing back to fight with you for anything. Youre thinking too much.
Ye Yunfeng closed his eyes, as if he didnt really want to see the man in front of him.
Youve been stronger than me since you were young. Youre all stronger than me. Since youre already dead, you shouldnt have appeared!
Only when you die will I not live in your shadow.
He said that Ye Yunfeng was a shadow, but in reality, he was Ye Yunfengs shadow.
Thats right, they were also what the world called unlucky twins. Ye Yunfeng was the older brother, and he, Ye Junlin, was the younger brother.
Ye Yunfeng listened to Ye Junlins hoarse shouts, and there was no extra expression on his face.
Actually, he didnt know what to say either. This world seemed to have no ce for twins. He didnt hate Ye Junlin.
Only one of the twins could survive, and he was the one who was left behind.
As for the existence of Ye Junlin, he only found out that he had a younger brother the moment he fell off the cliff.
A younger brother who had always lived in the shadows.
Ye Junlin drew the sword in his hand and pointed it at Ye Yunfengs face that was exactly like his.
His expression was indifferent as he said, If you didnte back, nothing would have happened. But you came back. Ye Yunfeng, dont me me
If you have anyst words to say, say it quickly. Although I cant help you convey it, at least you said it.
After Ye Yunfeng fell off the cliff, he was actually afraid because he was the one who made Ye Yunfeng fall off the cliff.
He killed his own brother.
But more, more.
He could live openly with this face.
These few years, he had been imitating Ye Yunfengs living habits. This way, he wouldnt let that father of his see through his ws. Gradually, he also thought of himself as Ye Yunfeng.
It was as if he was Ye Yunfeng.
But he never thought that Ye Yunfeng was still alive, and even defected to the mo territories. Thinking that Ye Yunfeng was still alive, it was as if there was a thorn in his heart.
If he didnt pull this thorn out, he would suffer forever.
He had to get rid of Ye Yunfeng before the pavilion master knew about this matter.
Ye Yunfeng closed his eyes. His voice was low and deep, without a trace of fear.
I dont have anyst words to say.
His mind seemed to have thought of something again, and Ye Yunfeng opened
his eyes. If someonees to find me, dont hurt her. Shes my junior sister.
Let her leave on her own.
Just as he finished speaking, a subordinate outside said,Young master, a woman has barged into our Fiend Feather Pavilion.
Ye Junlins eyes turned cold. He nced at Ye Yunfeng and slowly withdrew the sword in his hand. You came really quickly. he said faintly.
The expression on Ye Yunfengs face finally had a trace of fluctuation as he warned, Dont hurt her!
I want to see what kind of woman you care about.
Ye Junlin sneered and turned to leave.
Ye Yunfeng struggled with all his might in the dark dungeon. The thick and cold iron chains made a sound, but he still couldnt break free from the control of the iron chains.
At this moment, MO Ruyue had already arrived at the Fiend Feather Pavilion.
She had naturally heard of the Fiendish Feather Pavilion. It was an assassin organization in the Nine Regions.
Hillghost had brought her here, which meant that Third Senior Brother should be here too.
Quickly hand over my senior brother Ye Yunfeng, or else dont me me for being impolite to you.
MO Ruyue did not show the slightest bit of stage fright when facing the group of men in ck.
She was dressed in red, with a sword hanging on each side of her waist. She looked valiant.
At this moment, a man in ck appeared in MO Ruyues line of sight.
Senior Brother!
MO Ruyue hurriedly shouted and waved at the man.
Ye Junlin walked in front of MO Ruyue and said in a low voice,Junior Sister. MO Ruyue was almost certain that the man in front of her was Third Brother. Senior Brother, what did these people do to you? Why
MO Ruyue looked around and saw that the men in ck seemed to be very respectful to Ye Yunfeng, which made her somewhat confused.
At night, these ck-clothed people were all groping around Ye Yunfeng, and now they all looked very obedient.
It was too strange.
Ye Junlin raised his hand and asked his subordinates to leave.
He had imitated Ye Yunfeng since he was young, and he had imitated that fellows mannerisms to perfection.
He would definitely not let this woman in front of him recognize that he was not Ye Yunfeng.
Junior Sister,e with me.
After Ye Junlin finished speaking, he turned around.
Her attitude was indifferent as she followed Ye Yunfeng.
MO Ruyue did not notice that something was wrong with the man and followed him..
Chapter 744 - 744: Bad Man
Chapter 744 - 744: Bad Man
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Senior Brother, the Fiend Feather Pavilion is an assassin organization. Do you have any connections with the assassin organization?
She asked curiously as she followed the man through a bamboo forest.
The mans voice was calm and cold. l was originally the young master of the
Evil Feather Pavilion. Those people only wanted to bring me backst night.
Senior Brother, you are actually the young master of the Fiend Feather Pavilion!
MO Ruyue was stunned.
Then he said, Its just that the way they brought you back was too rough. I thought they wanted to attack you, Senior Brother. It seems that I was rmed for nothing.
She touched her chin and said thoughtfully.
You must be tired from the journey. Ill get someone to prepare a room and food for you.
Actually, its fine, but I really need a good rest.
MO Ruyue rubbed her eyes. She had not slept well for two to three days in a row. With her current physique, she definitely could not take it.
He might suddenly die.
If it was a body like the Demon Lords, it would probably not be a problem for him to not sleep for a month.
MO Ruyue did not stand on ceremony since her Senior Brother had arranged a ce for her to stay and provided her with delicious food.
His senior brothers did not seem to have simple identities.
Eldest Brother was once the Crown Prince, Third Brother was the Young Master of the Pavilion of the Assassins, and Fourth Brother was also the son of the State Preceptor. However, the identity of twins made Fourth Brother an ominous person.
He really couldnt understand why people of this era would have such thoughts.
Twins were so good.
As for the other senior brothers, he did not know much about them, nor did he know their identities.
After dinner, MO Ruyue went to find her Third Brother.
Why? Is there something you need from me?
The man asked with a calm expression.
MO Ruyue hesitated for a moment before continuing,Senior Brother, are you not going back to the Demon Realm?
Being a young master here seemed to be a little better than being in the Demon Realm.
Could it be that Ye Yunfeng didnt want to return to the Demon Realm? He seemed to be quite used to this ce. He didnt feel ufortable at all.
This ce is better than the Demon Realm. Junior Sister, do you want to stay too?
Ye Junlin looked at the beautiful woman in front of him and asked casually.
This woman was actually Ye Yunfengs junior sister.
Forget about me, I still have to go find Miracle Doctor He Xi.
Mo Ruyue was still thinking about the position of the Demon Commander. Perhaps she was more ambitious. Senior Brother, dont move.
Whats wrong?
Ye Junlin was just about to ask when the woman suddenly tiptoed and approached him.
He subconsciously held his breath and gathered his cultivation behind his back, ready to attack this woman.
He could smell a faint fragrance, but it was not the smell of rouge.
It seemed that he could only smell it when he was close to this woman.
Soon, the woman in front of him left him with a leaf in her hand.
A leaf.
Mo Ruyue casually threw the leaf on the ground.
Ye Junlins gaze fell onto the ground as he retracted his cultivation.
Senior Brother, if you dont want to go back, then Ill go to the water source alone tomorrow. When I go back, Ill report your choice to the Demon Lord.
MO Ruyue was still a little sad when she thought about how she might lose a senior brother.
His senior brothers were the same as his brother.
Third Senior Brother was cold on the outside but warm on the inside. He was usually like an ice cube and looked difficult to talk to. In fact, after getting along with him, she realized that this man was really cold, but he was not difficult to get along with.
Hillghost gritted his teeth at Ye Junlin.
Although this man looked exactly the same as Ye Yunfeng, and his mannerisms were very simr, the smell on his body was not right.
Masters Third Senior Brother was not him.
Gui Gui, how can you be so fierce to your senior brother? You cant do this.
MO Ruyue found that Mountain Ghost seemed to be very hostile to Third Brother.
It wasnt like this before.
She couldnt help but feel suspicious.
What kind of animal is this?
Mo Ruyue was rmed by his words, but she did not react immediately.
She seemed to have guessed something. The man in front of her was very likely not Ye Yunfeng.
Ye Yunfeng had long known that this was a mountain ghost and would not have asked such a question at all.
Moreover, Hillghost was even gritting his teeth at this man. Clearly, Hillghost already felt that this man wasnt Ye Yunfeng.
In order not to reveal any ws, MO Ruyue answered casually, I picked up a small animal on the way here and gave it a ghostly name.
At this moment, Ye Junlin was actually secretly thinking that something bad had happened.
When he asked this question, he was also shocked that he had identally revealed a w and was about to make a move on this woman.
However, this woman acted as if nothing had happened and acted as if nothing had happened.
Ye Junlin heaved a sigh of relief.
It seemed that he had not been exposed.
Senior Brother, Im going to rest first. Ill leave tomorrow morning.
Okay, go ahead.
Ye Junlin responded and watched MO Ruyue leave.
The two of them had different thoughts, each harboring ulterior motives.
After returning to her room, MO Ruyue hurriedly closed the door. She leaned against the door, feeling a little scared.
Third Senior Brother was in a very dangerous situation. She had to think of a way to save him.
Gui Gui, that man just now wasnt Third Senior Brother, right?
Hillghost hurriedly nodded.
Everyones aura was different. The aura of that man just now was not the aura of Masters third senior brother at all.
MO Ruyue knew that animals had a very sensitive sense of smell, so she trusted Hillghosts judgment.
Gui Gui, go out and find out where Third Senior Brother is. Ill go stall that bad man.
She thought about it and decided not to alert the enemy first. She would figure out the details of the ce first.
She picked up the pillow on the bed and hugged it to look for the bad man.
Hillghost also went out. His small figure was not easily discovered.
Even if they were discovered, no one would take the mountain ghosts seriously. They would just treat them as squirrels out to hunt for food.
He had to make sure where Third Brother was locked up.
Senior brother, senior brother
MO Ruyue cried and cried, her face full of grievance.
Ye Junlin was just about to go to the dungeon to end Ye Yunfeng when he saw that woman crying and looking for him.
Junior Sister, whats wrong? he asked.
The womans eyes were red from crying, like a little rabbit, delicate and moving.
Senior Brother, MO Ruyue said with grievance, Im afraid of sleeping. If
Senior Brother doesnt apany me, I wont be able to sleep.
Ye Junlin frowned slightly. Usually, Ye Yunfeng would sleep with his junior sister?
This made him somewhat suspicious.
It was no wonder he didnt have anything to say, but he only remembered to ask this woman to leave.
Because of the womans obstruction, Ye Junlin could only give up.
In any case, locking Ye Yunfeng in the dungeon would not cause any idents.
Alright, Ill sleep with you.
Ye Junlin carried the woman in front of him by her waist and strode towards his room.
Mo Ruyue felt a little disgusted, but when she thought about how she had to buy time for Hillghost to find Ye Yunfeng, she could only endure it.
If not for the bad mans previous question, she would have been fooled by him.
Ye Junlin ced MO Ruyue on the bed and to sleep. Ill stay here with you.
Yes.
MO Ruyue obediently closed her eyes and pretended to sleep.
Actually, she was really sleepy, but it was not the time to sleep yet.
Ye Junlin apanied her by the bed for a while. Seeing that the woman seemed to have fallen asleep, he wanted to pull his hand away..
Chapter 745 - 745: A once-in-a-lifetime opportunity
Chapter 745 - 745: A once-in-a-lifetime opportunity
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Senior Brother?
MO Ruyue opened her eyes in a daze.
She was in a half-asleep state as she held the mans hand tightly.
Still not asleep?
Im already asleep, but Ill wake up when you pull my hand away. Senior brother, do you hate me?
MO Ruyue burst into tears.
Looking at the womans tears, Ye Junlin felt somewhat helpless in his heart. Ye Yunfeng actually had such a difficult junior sister! How could that be? Senior brother doesnt hate junior sister.
Then Senior Brother, you cant let go, okay?
Alright.
Ye Junlin could only agree. He had never seen such a troublesome woman in his life.
He really didnt know how Ye Yunfeng that fellow could stand such a clingy junior sister.
Thus, MO Ruyue unceremoniously ced the mans hand under her head. If she really fell asleep, she would wake up once the man pulled his hand away.
MO Yue had a good sleep.
Her neck was a little sore.
Hillghost came to the dungeon after smelling the scent and saw Ye Yunfeng bound by thick, cold iron chains with a nce.
With a few leaps, it arrived in front of Ye Yunfeng. This was that familiar aura.
Squeak
Hillghost let out a mouse-like sound.
Ye Yunfeng slowly opened his eyes, and his gaze fell on Hillghost.
Wheres your master? He asked.
Squeak
Ye Yunfeng didnt understand what Hillghost was saying at all, but he knew that Hillghost might understand what he was saying.
Is your master alright now?
Hillghost nodded.
Did your master ask you to save me?
Hillghost nodded, then shook his head.
Its master only asked it to find him, not to save him.
However, it thought for a moment and jumped onto the iron chain. The chain was as thick as its arm.
She bit it with her teeth and realized that it hurt.
Its useless. This is a chain made of ck iron. You cant bite it. You have to use a key.
Ye Yunfeng knew that Hillghost was saving him.
But Hillghost had no way to untie the chains.
Return to your masters side and take him away from here.
Ye Yunfeng instructed.
He was afraid that he could not leave this ce.
Hillghost jumped off the chain. Alright, it would return to its masters side first.
Then, Hillghost left the dungeon without looking back.
When Mo Ruyue woke up, she found the bad man lying on the side of the bed, seemingly asleep.
She slowly got up and felt her neck ache.
It was already dark outside.
The man in front of her seemed to have not woken up yet. MO Ruyue saw the mountain ghost outside and was about to get out of bed.
At this moment, the man beside her suddenly opened his eyes, and his eyes were filled with killing intent.
MO Ruyue was stunned.
Should she take out a brick and knock this man unconscious?
As she was thinking, she heard the man awake?
MO Ruyue put away her thoughts.
He could not alert the enemy.
Senior Brother, my neck is so sore.
MO Ruyue felt that her shoulders were a little uneven. Was her neck stiff?
Ye Junlin moved his arm and realized that it was numb.
He could not move at all!
Senior Brother will give you a massage?
Ye Junlin asked calmly. Although he could not move his hand, he could still move his other hand.
This woman was sleepingfortably, making his arm numb.
MO Ruyue smiled awkwardly. How embarrassing.
Forget it. Ill move around by myself.
After saying that, MO Ruyue got out of bed. Although she hadnt slept enough, she was not as sleepy as before.
Ever since she became the Holy Maiden, she had not slept in for a long time.
When she used to be a spy, there were basically no missions for her toplete.
Basically, he justy in bed and slept in every day.
Even though she missed that time, she couldnt let herself continue to be a spy that was ignored by others.
She had to pull herself together and work hard.
The sky hasnt brightened yet, Junior Sister isnt going to sleep, right?
If he wasnt going to sleep, shouldnt Junior Sister pack her luggage and leave this ce?
Ye Junlin felt that his arm was gradually regaining feeling.
It was not as ufortable as before.
Uh, is Senior Brother chasing me away?Mo Ruyue looked at the man in front of her with an aggrieved expression.
She hadnt even rescued the real Third Senior Brother, so how could she leave so easily?
Ye Junlins expression changed slightly, and his dark eyes flickered. Junior Sister, dont you have other things to do? Im afraid that Junior Sisters presence here will dy things.
Its not an important matter. If its dyed, so be it.
In the future, Senior Brother will stay here and not return to the Demon Realm, so Junior Sister wants to stay here and apany Senior Brother more.
MO Ruyue revealed a reluctant expression.
Then, she acted pitiful towards the man and said,Senior Brother, can I stay here with you for two more days?
This woman in front of him was really troublesome.
He had originally agreed to leave in the morning, but now he had changed his mind.
Ye Junlin clenched his fists in his sleeves.
Didnt this damned woman say anything?
Alright.
Ye Junlin agreed verbally, but he was actually unwilling in his heart.
If he really couldnt do it, he could only kill this woman in front of him.
At this moment, someone came over from outside.
Young Master.
The subordinate knew that there was someone in the room, so he did not say anything.
Ye Junlin turned around and nced at MO Ruyue.You stay here and dont run around. Ill go and see whats going on.
Yes, Senior Brother, go ahead. Ill wait for you here.
MO Ruyue cheered in her heart. This man was finally leaving.
She was worried that she could not chase this man away, but now, this man was finally leaving.
The moment the man left, Hillghost entered the house.
Gui Gui, did you find Third Senior Brother?
Squeak
Hillghost nodded.
Third Senior Brother, are you still alright?
Mo Ruyue couldnt help but ask.
She was more worried about Third Senior Brothers safety now.
Why did that man pretend to be Third Brother?
Could it be another story about twins?
Hillghost nodded.
MO Ruyue did not waste any more time. This was a once-in-a-lifetime opportunity.
When I get my sword, bring me to Third Senior Brother.
After that, MO Ruyue ducked under the cover and guidance of the mountain ghost to avoid all eyes and came to the dungeon.
There was not much light in the dungeon.
With a nce, he saw Ye Yunfeng who was bound by a thick, ice-cold iron chain.
Sure enough, this was the real Ye Yunfeng.
Third Senior Brother!
Mo Ruyue shouted and ran over.
Ye Yunfeng looked up at MO Ruyue and slowly said, Junior Sister, why are you here? Its dangerous here. Leave quickly.
l came here to save you, senior brother. I wont leave until I save you.
MO Ruyue didnt have the time to say anything more to Ye Yunfeng. She drew the Heaven-cleaving Sword that she carried with her and shed it at the chain.
Sparks flew when the Heaven-cleaving Sword collided with the iron chain.
Fortunately, the chains were broken.
If even the divine sword couldnt cut through the iron chain, then the divine sword would be a little stretched.
Ye Yunfeng could finally move his body.
Come, lets leave this ce together. MO Ruyue said calmly..
Chapter 746 - 746: An Inauspicious Omen
Chapter 746 - 746: An Inauspicious Omen
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
At this moment, the door to the dungeon opened.
Ye Junlin appeared in their line of sight.
As expected, youve seen through my disguise. Then I cant keep you alive.
He drew his sword and said coldly.
His eyes were fixed on the man and woman in front of him.
The person he wanted to kill was originally only Ye Yunfeng, and now there was another woman.
MO Ruyues expression tightened. This mans arrival was too coincidental.
Ye Yunfeng pulled MO Ruyue behind him and scolded Ye Junlin, If theres anything, juste at me.
Ye Junlin sneered, his demeanor and actions extremely simr to Ye
Yunfengs.
She knows too much. 1 wont let her off.
Ye Yunfeng had to die, and Ye Yunfengs junior sister had to die as well.
If Im not wrong, you two should be twin brothers, right? MO Ruyue stood out and said.
Since we are brothers, why do we have to kill each other? Didnt they say that brothers were like brothers? Wouldnt killing ones own brother be like cutting off ones own limbs?
Its because were twins that only one of us can survive, Ye Junlin said slowly.
MO Ruyue was puzzled.
Twins is an ominous sign.
Ye Junlin said coldly.
He was the one who had been eliminated.
MO Ruyue burst intoughter. Youre simply ignorant and feudal. Twins are an ominous sign. Who said that?
It has been passed down since ancient times!
Is it true that it has been passed down since ancient times?
MO Ruyue questioned sternly, her eyes fixed on the man in front of her.
Hearing MO Ruyues question, Ye Junlin fell silent.
Once upon a time, he had also thought so.
Were the rules that had been passed down correct?
How many lousy rules had been passed down and how many people had been harmed?
He was also a victim.
I dont know what will happen if you have twins here, but its ridiculous that you think its bad luck to have twins.
In our country, its a very happy thing for anyone to have two twins. After all, the probability of twins is so small. Isnt it because of luck that there are twins?
Ye Yunfeng tilted his head and stared at MO Ruyue.
If anyone else heard about the twins, they would definitely show fear or disgust. However, Ruyue felt that this was a very lucky thing.
When he fell off the cliff, he found out that he had a younger brother.
All these years, he had never thought of returning here.
Because he knew that once he returned, his younger brother might lose his life.
Even though he missed his mother, he could only endure it in order to let his brother live.
Jun Lin, from the moment I fell off the cliff, I found out that 1 still have a younger brother in this world. All these years, Ive also investigated your past. I could havee back, but youre my younger brother, and I want you to live.
This was the first time Ye Yunfeng had said such a long speech, and he had also picked out the main points.
Ye Junlins tense expression loosened slightly, and the sword in his hand trembled slightly.
Then why did youe to the Western Region? Didnt youe to take back everything that belonged to you?
Ye Yunfeng sighed. Everything here doesnt belong to me alone. This ce also belongs to you. I came to the West Lake Region only because of the
Demon Lords orders, not for the Fiendish Feather Pavilion.
He didnt have much obsession with the Fiend Feather Pavilion.
Then, he added, And Im doing quite well in the Demon Realm. Ye Junlin lowered his eyes. He did not know what to choose.
Dont you hate me? Back then, you fell off the cliff because of me.
l never hated you. Even after I found out that it was you, 1 never hated you.
Ye Yunfeng shook his head.
With a ng, the sword in Ye Junlins hand fell to the ground.
Brother, Im sorry!
He just wanted to live openly and did not want to hide in the shadows forever with a mask on.
When he found out that Ye Yunfeng was still alive, he felt restless every night, afraid that Ye Yunfeng would suddenly return.
Therefore, he had always arranged for people to kill Ye Yunfeng.
Only when Ye Yunfeng died would he be able to feel at ease.
Ye Yunfeng walked towards Ye Junlin.
MO Ruyue was still a little scared when she saw this scene.
He had a feeling that Ye Junlin would suddenly take out a dagger and stab Ye Yunfeng when he got close.
Thus, MO Ruyue pulled Ye Yunfengs hand.
Senior brother
MO Ruyue called out hesitantly with worry in her eyes.
It was no wonder that she thought so, but she had seen too many such scenes in television dramas.
Moreover, human hearts were unpredictable.
Ye Yunfeng released MO Ruyues hand and gave her a reassuring look.
Jun Lin.
He called out like an older brother.
His voice was no longer as cold as before. Instead, it had a hint of warmth.
Ye Junlin gritted his teeth. Brother.
Finally, the two brothers hugged each other tightly.
MO Ruyue finally heaved a sigh of relief when she saw this scene. Fortunately, it was not like the scene on TV.
He was afraid that Ye Junlin would suddenly pull out a knife and stab Ye Yunfeng.
Is Mother still here?
Ye Yunfeng asked. He missed his mother dearly.
At the mention of his mother, Ye Junlins eyes finally turned red.
Mother died not long after you fell off the cliff.
If there was anyone in this world who treated him well, it would be his mother.
If it wasnt for his mother, perhaps he wouldnt even have the chance to survive.
However, in order to live openly, he plotted to kill his own brother. Her mother died of depression after her brother fell off a cliff.
Mother
Ye Yunfengs hands were tightly clenched into fists, and he only felt that breathing became abnormally difficult again.
It turns out that mv mother has already passed away.
MO Ruyue sighed.
Twins were an ominous sign that had harmed so many people!
l want to see my mothers grave.
Ye Yunfeng did not me Ye Junlin because he knew that all of this was not Ye Junlins fault.
What was wrong was that rule, that sentence.
Hence, Ye Junlin took Ye Yunfeng to his mothers grave.
MO Ruyue and Hillghost followed behind them.
At this moment, the sky outside was already bright.
Finally, Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin knelt down in front of a tombstone.
MO Ruyue stood further away because she felt that the two brothers must have something to say to her mother. It would not be good for her to listen.
It was better to take the initiative and stay away.
She sat on the ground, thinking about the Demon Lord.
The Demon Lords body should be fine.
He had to wait for her to bring the Miracle Doctor back.
Devil World
At this moment, Ming Sihan was meditating. However, his eyebrows were tightly knitted together. It was obvious that he was not meditating attentively. In the past, when he meditated, his brows were rxed and his face was calm.
He opened his eyes. Men, call MO Chengfeng over.
Yes, Demon Venerable.
The subordinate outside answered in a daze.
This genius is still in the early stages of dawn. Why is the Demon Lord looking for Senior Brother MO?
However, this was not something a gatekeeper like him could ask.
He just had to obediently do whatever the demon ordered him to do..
Chapter 747 - 747: Where Did This Young Girl Come From?
Chapter 747 - 747: Where Did This Young Girl Come From?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Chengfeng had just woken up and washed up when the first disciple called him to the Demon Lords bedroom.
This made MO Chengfeng somewhat helpless. Why was the Demon Lord looking for him so early?
With a perturbed heart, MO Chengfeng arrived outside the pce.
Demon Venerable!
MO Chengfeng called out in a low voice,
Come in.
Upon hearing the mans voice, MO Chengfeng stepped into the bedroom.
This was a voice transmission, so after he entered the door, he had to pass through the courtyard to reach the Demon Lords room.
Demon Venerable, you were looking for me?
Mo Chengfeng asked in a low voice.
Yes. Did Ruyue send any letters back?
For example, if they encountered any difficulties on the way, or if they needed help.
Ming Sihan thought to himself.
It couldnt be smooth sailing, right?
There were many idents and dangers on the road from here to the West Ze Region.
Although Ye Yunfeng was reliable, he wasnt that powerful either.
MO Ruyue definitely needed his help!
He thought.
MO Chengfeng paused for a moment, then replied didnt receive any letter from Junior Sister Ruyue. If everything goes smoothly, Junior Sister Ruyue should have arrived at the West Lake Region in the past few days.
Are you worried about Junior Sister Ruyue?
The demon must be worried about Ruyue, so he paid so much attention to her. How is that possible? Shes just a little saintess. Why would I worry about
He just wanted to know if that woman had gone to invite the divine doctor.
Dont lie to him.
Since there is no letter, you can leave first.
Yes.
Nio Chengfeng left without thinking.
The Demon Lord was really strange. So it was because his body was not feeling well, but now it had affected his brain?
This woman, what the hell is she doing? Why didnt she send a letter back?
Perhaps its time to teach that woman some spells.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin, the two brothers, finally recognized each other. They looked at each other, only at each other.
Brother, are you going to see Father?
Ye Junlin asked in a low voice, Actually, he was a little afraid.
He didnt wish for Ye Yunfeng to meet his father.
A father was not a mother, but he was not as gentle as a mother, nor did he care about his child as much as a mother.
If Father knew that they were twins, one of them would have to die.
Men had never experienced the pain of childbirth, so they could not understand how painful it was to give birth.
It was lucky to survive childbirth.
It was even rarer for the mother and son to be safe.
Therefore, their father would naturally not have any pity for that extra child.
Ye Yunfengs mind was thinking about that stern man, but he didnt feel too emotional.
That man only wanted to groom him to be the sessor of the Fiend Feather Pavilion, so he taught him very strictly.
In his memory, that man had never smiled at him.
He had a cold face all year round and was also very unreasonable.
Towards such a father, he indeed had no feelings for him.
He thought for a moment and said, 1 wont go see him. Youll be me from now on.
Because they were deeply persecuted by this world, they were more willing to ept that twins were not an ominous sign.
Some people would only submit to oppression.
Some people were oppressed and wanted to fight back.
Obviously, they were the second type of people. They did not want to be so submissive anymore.
They had been living for more than twenty years, and it seemed that nothing ominous had happened.
From this, it could be seen that if twins were an ominous sign, it should just be a rumor.
So you wonte back in the future?
Ye Junlin asked again.
Ye Yunfeng was silent. He nced at Ye Junlin, who looked exactly like him, and slowly said,Probably.
Just as they were about to leave, a middle-aged man appeared in front of them.
Father!
Ye Junlin looked up. When he saw the man, a hint of panic shed across his eyes.
Ye Yunfeng pursed his lips and still didnt call out that form of address.
Perhaps it had been too long since hest called him father. The middle-aged man said coldly, Youre twins!
For more than twenty years, he had been kept in the dark.
He did not expect that he would have two sons.
He pulled out his sword with a cold expression, as if he was going to attack one of them.
He simply couldnt differentiate the son in front of him, who was Ye Yunfeng.
In the past, she had never treated her son well.
Father, what are you doing?
Ye Junlins gaze was fixed on the de that was glinting coldly.
He frowned.
Twins are an ominous sign. One of you must die. The middle-aged man said expressionlessly.
There was no warmth in his eyes.
He would never allow his career to be ruined because of the twins.
When Ye Yunfeng heard the middle-aged mans words, a cold smile appeared on his face. Then who do you want to kill? Kill me or him?
He was still a little surprised by this oue. He did not expect his biological father to really attack them because of that sentence.
It was no wonder why Mother had hidden Ye Junlin in the darkness.
They were probably afraid that their father wouldy a hand on either of them.
Not knowing why, Ye Yunfeng only felt that his heart was iparably deste.
One of you must die. The mans tone was firm.
Theres no reason for me to feel soft-hearted because of my two sons.
This would only make him more determined in his thoughts.
If I can leave and nevere back, will you let us go?
Ye Yunfeng asked.
If he could, he would rather leave himself than let Ye Junlin be his substitute and live in his shadow.
Because they were brothers, and brothers should help each other.
No, one of you must die.
The middle-aged man did not think much about it. He would never allow himself to have twins.
Twins are unlucky!
But we all want to live.
Ye Yunfeng didnt want to pay for such a ridiculous sentence.
They couldnt believe that the man in front of them was their father.
MO Ruyue saw this scene from a distance and had already heard what they were talking about.
After all, his voice was still quite loud.
They did not expect their father toe here and see their twin sons.
MO Ruyue led the ghost over.
He wanted to see if he could help.
Then Ill start with you.
The middle-aged man pointed his sword at Ye Yunfeng.
MO Ruyue ran over and hurriedly shielded Ye Yunfeng behind her.
She said with a solemn expression,l wont allow you to attack my senior brother.
If he wanted to make a move on her senior brother, he had to get past her first.
Where did this little girle from?
Do you believe that I will kill you too?
The middle-aged man berated, his eyes shrinking. This woman was really bold.
MO Ruyue raised her chin slightly and snorted. To tell you the truth, Im the Saintess of the Demon World, and hes my Senior Brother. If you kill my
Senior Brother, youll be going against the Demon World. Do you think the Demon Mirror will let you off? A mere Fiend Feather Pavilion is nothing to our mo territories.
She directly revealed her identity.
The Demon World was several levels higher than the Fiend Feather Pavilion..
Chapter 748 - 748: She Can Only Win With A Brick
Chapter 748 - 748: She Can Only Win With A Brick
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
You dare to call yourself the Saintess of the Demon Realm?
The middle-aged man clearly did not believe that MO Ruyue was the Saintess of the Devil World.
In his eyes, it was impossible for the Demonic Saintess to look so harmless. The golden seals of the Demon Realm Saintess are all on me.
As MO Ruyue spoke, she took out the golden seal that proved her identity.
The middle-aged mans expression changed when he saw the golden seal.
He did not expect that the woman in front of him was actually the Demon Worlds Saintess.
In other words, his son had also joined the Demon Realm.
You actually joined the Demon Realm, so I cant let you live.
Since he had actually joined the Demon Realm, he was not worthy of being his son.
MO Ruyues mouth twitched. She had wanted to use her identity as the Saintess of the Devil World to intimidate this middle-aged man.
However, he did not expect that this middle-aged man would be even more aggressive when he learned that it was the demon world.
You actually dont put our Demon Venerable in your eyes. Do you believe that the Demon Venerable will bring people to tten your Fiend Feather
Pavilion?
MO Ruyue couldnt lose in terms of momentum.
The man in front of her was also a Golden Core Stage expert, but MO Ruyue was not afraid. She had already defeated a Golden Core Stage immortal cultivator.
Ye Junlins eyes shed with envy when he saw how MO Ruyue was defending Ye Yunfeng.
By the time the Demon Venerablees, youll already be dead. l think your brain is not very bright. You want to kill one of your sons just for a rumor about twins, and you dont even hesitate to offend the Demon Realm
Nio Ruyue felt that this middle-aged man in front of her was simply out of his mind.
Was it worth it?
Hearing MO Ruyues words, the middle-aged mans expression changed.
This was indeed not a good deal.
It was indeed not worth it to sacrifice his Fiend Feather Pavilion for a Devil World Saintess.
However, he could not tolerate the son of a twin.
Only one could survive.
Since he belongs to the Demon Realm, Ill kill him.
The middle-aged man pointed his sword at Ye Junlin.
Ye Junlin listened to the middle-aged mans words and felt sad.
That was why he had done so many things over the years, but it could notpare to a ridiculous rumor.
A rumor couldpletely negate his efforts.
At this moment, Ye Junlin felt his heart ache.
When MO Ruyue saw this, she quickly protected Ye Junlin. She stared at the middle-aged man in front of her with a face full of disbelief.
Are you crazy? He has been raising your son for so many years. Just because of a ridiculous sentence, you want to kill your own son?
One of your sons has already entered the Devil World and has severed ties with you. Now, you want to kill your other son. Doesnt your Fiend Feather
Pavilion need an heir?
This man was too crazy. He didnt even give himself a way out?
Mo Ruyue really didnt understand.
This middle-aged man was too brainwashed by that sentence.
Heir? As long as I have a woman, why should I worry about not having a son?
The two of them are quite different.
The middle-aged man snorted coldly. He could have as many sons as he wanted.
Anyway, he wasnt the one who gave birth to her.
MO Ruyue was stunned. She said in disbelief, Do you sound like a human? She didnt even care about her son.
This was the first time he had heard a father say such words.
MO Ruyues horizons were truly broadened.
There was a saying that was very true. Not everyone in this world was suitable to be a father.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin both felt it and felt extremely disappointed.
It turned out that in this mans eyes, the two of them were nothing.
He could have more sons, and he could have more women.
Therefore, their mother was probably nothing in this mans heart.
Stinky girl, get lost! If you stop me again, Ill kill you too.
The middle-aged man said angrily.
It was also because this woman was the saintess of the demon world that he did not directly attack her.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin looked at each other and pulled MO Ruyue behind them.
The battle between father and son had begun.
Ye Junlin and Ye Yunfeng were both Foundation Establishment cultivators. It was just that one was an immortal cultivator and the other was a fiendish cultivator.
Their father was a jindan immortal cultivator.
The father wanted to kill his two sons, and the two sons only wanted to live.
MO Ruyue felt her heart ache for the twins.
The main thing was that she had lived for so long and had never seen a father like this.
He was simply like a beast.
No, even if it was a beast, it would still protect its calf.
She didnt know how to describe this middle-aged man.
As she watched the battle, she cheered for her senior brother and Ye Junlin!
The result was obvious. The twin brothers were no match for the middle-aged man at all.
The difference in strength was too obvious.
Moreover, the two of them did not have any particrly good equipment on them.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin were no match for the middle-aged man. Both of them fell to the ground, spitting out bright red blood.
The middle-aged man wanted to kill his two sons.
MO Ruyue took out a brick from her backpack and flew forward to meet the attack.
Youre really a lunatic.
The middle-aged mans sword was blocked by MO Ruyues brick and was sent flying.
After all, the bricks ability was to return 100% damage.
The middle-aged man looked at MO Ruyue in disbelief. This little Qi Refiner was actually able to withstand one of his moves.
His gaze fell on the ordinary-looking brick in MO Ruyues hand. It was impossible for an ordinary brick to block his sword.
What is that thing in your hand?
The middle-aged man was sure that the reason why he was bounced back was because of the brick in the womans hand.
He did not understand why the brick in the womans hand was so powerful.
Nio Ruyue shook the brick in her hand and said casually, Its just an ordinary brick.
The middle-aged man stood up and gripped the hilt of his sword.
This is definitely not an ordinary brick.
After saying that, the middle-aged man dashed toward MO Ruyue like a bolt of lightning.
MO Ruyue turned sideways beautifully and quickly used a brick to block her vital parts.
Usually, she would use the Heaven Splitting Sword and the Ghost Will Sword to deal with those who were one level higher than her. For those who were two levels higher than her, she could only use a brick to win.
As for the high three, she hadnt met any of them.
An ordinary person would be able to reach Qi Refinement in one or two years. It was very simple and easy to reach that height.
However, from Qi Refinement to Foundation Establishment, it would take at least three years, at most ten to twenty years. This required perseverance.
It would take at least 30 to 50 years to advance from the Foundation Establishment Stage to the Golden Core Stage. It would take at least 20 years to increase ones cultivation by spending money?
The time needed to go from Jindan to Yuanying was at least a hundred years.
Therefore, Jindan wasmon, but Yuanying was rare.
From the original level to a higher level, it would take a longer time, and it would also depend on luck.
As time passed, if one did not have luck, they would still not be able to improve.
Of course, to sum up, it was just some ordinary people who cultivated on the wall.
Geniuses and those with special talent might rise faster.
The middle-aged man was a little out of breath. He, a jindan, actually couldnt beat Xiaoxiao. If he told others, he would only be a joke.
The middle-aged man continued to attack MO Ruyue, his moves bing fiercer and fiercer.
He did not believe that he could not defeat this little Qi Disciple.
MO Ruyue couldnt defeat this middle-aged man head-on, but she could defend, dodge, hide, and develop.
Hold on, dont be reckless.
When the man hit the brick, the damage would be reflected.
Therefore, the middle-aged man could not hold on any longer.
It was as if he was fighting someone with the same strength as him.
It was naturally not easy for a Golden Core cultivator to fight a Golden Core cultivator..
Chapter 749 - 749: Paradise
Chapter 749 - 749: Paradise
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Seeing that the man was a little exhausted, MO Ruyue threw a brick at him.
The middle-aged man fainted on the ground.
Mo Ruyue took a deep breath and put the brick away.
Alright, Ive already dealt with this fellow.
MO Ruyue pped her hands and turned to look at Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin.
The rest of the matter was left to the two brothers.
She did not know what to do with the middle-aged man. After all, this man had nothing to do with her.
It still depended on Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlins decision.
He was already down. Ruyue pped her hands and handed the old man over to Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin.
What the two brothers wanted to do next was their choice.
MO Ruyue did not intend to interfere.
Ye Yunfeng nced at the man on the ground, then looked at Ye Junlin and said, How do you want to deal with the underling?
Ye Junlin frowned slightly and stared at the middle-aged man who had fainted.
Was he going to kill this man?
Although this man did not like him, he was still his father.
l dont know.
Ye Junlin didnt know what to do.
He knew very well that when the man woke up, he might still want to kill him.
Ye Yunfeng took out a dagger and handed it to Ye Junlin, saying,Do you want to
l cant do it!
Ye Junlin shook his head and rejected Ye Yunfengs dagger.
He couldnt kill his father.
Of course, Ye Yunfeng was also unable to kill this man.
But if you dont kill him, then you wont be able to stay in the Fiend Feather Pavilion. He will kill you sooner orter when he wakes up.
Ye Yunfeng spoke seriously.
He had to make a choice.
I
Ye Junlin gritted his teeth and said,Ican leave the Evil Feather Pavilion.
As he spoke, he pulled off a token from his body.
Perhaps leaving this ce was not a bad thing.
He just wanted to live openly. Anyway, now that his identity had been exposed, the Evil Feather Pavilion would definitely not tolerate him.
Since he couldnt be tolerated, he could only leave this ce.
MO Ruyue, who was beside him, jeered, You can join the Devil World. In fact, the Devil World is not as bad as the rumors say. Moreover, the Devil World can ept twins. The Devil World will not regard twins as an ominous sign.
With your cultivation level, you only need one Revolving Spirit Pill to be a Devil Cultivator. The process is a little painful, but you can endure it. Moreover, your cultivation level definitely wont be much lower.
After MO Ruyue finished speaking, Ye Junlin looked at her and said,Looks like you know quite a lot.
Uh After all, there were many people in the Demon Realm who were originally immortal cultivators and eventually turned into demon cultivators.
MO Ruyue exined.
This wasnt anything strange.
Ye Yunfeng nced at MO Ruyue and said,Junior Sister is right. Since thats the case, then listen to Junior Sister.
Ye Junlin looked at MO Ruyue, and his voice sounded a little relieved.
Since this man could not tolerate him, then there was no need for him to continue staying in the Evil Feather Pavilion.
Even if the Demon Realm did not ept him, he would still rely on his own ability to survive.
He really hoped that this world would have less prejudice against twins.
Thats my junior sister!
Ye Yunfeng could not help but emphasize when he heard Ye Junlins voice.
This guy was here to snatch his junior sister away from him.
Junior Sister, Junior Sister, it was really catchy.
In the future, you will also be my junior sister. Junior sister, right? Ye Junlin looked at MO Yue with a smile that Ye Yunfeng couldnt see on his face.
MO Ruyue was stunned for a moment before she whispered,You should be my junior brother.
Do you want me to buy you delicious food, or do you want me to buy delicious food?
Ye Junlin asked.
Mo Ruyue said without hesitation, Of course youre the one whos buying me delicious food.
Squeak
Hillghost said that he also wanted the delicious Barn.
Thats right. Senior Brother takes care of Junior Sister and naturally buys delicious food for Junior Sister. Alright then.
For the sake of the delicious food.
In any case, there were already so many senior brothers. One more wouldnt be much.
Junior sister, you havent told me your name yet.
My name is MO Ruyue. Senior Brother, you can call me Ruyue.
Alright.
When Ye Yunfeng saw this scene, he only felt a little stifled in his heart.
She had found Ye Junlin quite pleasing to the eye before, but why was he bing more and more unpleasant to the eye now?
The three of them left the Fiend Feather Pavilion together.
When the man woke up, his subordinate immediately handed him a letter. Pavilion Master, Young Master left a letter and said that he would never return.
He still dares toe back!
Kill that ominous person when youe back!
The man thought sullenly.
Then, he opened the envelope.
After reading the letter, the man was so angry that he crushed the letter with his cultivation.
She actually severed ties with him!
Good, very good!
As expected, they were two unlucky people. He should kill them both.
The man thought angrily.
So you guys are going to look for the divine doctor He Xi.
Ye Junlins eyes shed when he heard MO Ruyues words.
Ye Yunfeng, who was walking at the front, said,l told you long ago that we didnte here topete with you for the Fiend Feather Pavilion.
Cough cough, lets not talk about the past.
Ye Junlin coughed lightly. Why was this brother of his so vengeful?
The three of them entered the water source area. The towns here were rtively small, and most of them were viges.
As far as the eye could see, there was a lush green bamboo forest. The forest that had just rained had ayer of white fog, as if it was wearing a veil.
It was faintly discernible and gave off a mysterious feeling.
This is really a paradise.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but sigh at the scene before her.
He couldnt help but mutter,Thend is t and spacious, the houses are solemn, there are fertile fields, beautiful ponds, mulberry and bamboo
Junior Sister, what are you reciting? Ye Junlin asked.
Recite the text. The entire text needs to be memorized.
MO Ruyue replied.
She liked Chinese ss, but she hated the recitation of a few words at the end of the ss.
Now that he thought about it, he could not forget the fear of being dominated by the full text.
It sounds like the scene in front of us.
Ye Junlin smiled.
MO Ruyue nced at Ye Junlin and realized that he liked to smile when he wasnt pretending.
On the other hand, Ye Yunfengs face was practically stoic.
Ill go ahead and inquire about the divine doctor He Xi.
Ye Yunfeng said a few words, then moved closer to the people in the vige.
Ye Junlin didnt follow, worried that his appearance would scare those people.
Two identical people would always arouse disgust from others. Not long after, Ye Yunfeng returned with a disappointed look.
They have never heard of the divine doctor He Xi.
No way, have you never heard of it?
MO Ruyue could not believe it. Divine Doctor He Xi lived near the water source, so it was impossible for these vigers not to have heard of him.
Yes.
Ye Yunfeng responded.
Ye Junlin thought for a moment and said,Why dont we go ahead and look for someone who knows about the divine doctor, He Xi?
After all, he was a divine doctor. It was normal for him to be difficult to find.
Thus, the three of them continued walking forward.
However, there were no viges in front of them.
Theres a hole over there. Should we go through that hole?
MO Ruyue suggested.
There was only one hole in front of him, and he had no other choice.
There seemed to be something on the other side of the hole. Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin looked at each other and then came to an agreement..
Chapter 750 - 750: The Demon Lord Is Dead?
Chapter 750 - 750: The Demon Lord Is Dead?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The three of them passed through the long cave.
The narrow cave became spacious.
He quickly walked out.
Outside, there were mountains and a long stream. On both sides of the stream were countless peach blossom forests.
The peach blossom forest was full of fallen petals, and the grass was green and tender.
MO Ruyue was stunned. This was inexplicably familiar.
Did hee out of the Peach Blossom Land?
She turned back to look at the cave behind her and said worriedly, This cave wont disappear after wee out, right?
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin looked at MO Ruyue, their eyes filled with doubt.
How could a cave disappear?
Was Ruyue confused?
Will it disappear? Ye Junlin said.
It wont disappear. Ye Yunfeng said.
Hearing their voices, MO Ruyue had nothing to say. At most, the three of them would get lost together.
Moreover, there was still the mountain ghost. Even if they encountered danger, would they not be able to deal with it with so many people?
After thinking about it, MO Ruyue no longer felt worried.
Since Im going with the stream, Im going to go with the flow.
There might not be people in ces with mountains, but there would definitely be people in ces with rivers.
ording to Feng Shui, water represented wealth and luck. Surrounded by water, it was the most fertile.
Moreover, people could not live without water. They had to live in a ce with water.
No matter how powerful the godly doctor was, he was still a human.
They walked for a long time until night fell, but they did not see a single person.
We might have to spend the night here.
Fortunately, I have two senior brothers apanying me.
Mo Ruyue thought of the strange things that she had encountered with MO Chengfeng in Si River. She felt a lingering fear just thinking about it.
As long as there was one more person, he would not be so afraid.
The more people there were, the bolder they were.
Ill go find something to eat. Ye Yunfeng walked towards the forest.
Leaving behind MO Ruyue and Jun Lin of the Night.
Ye Junlin looked around and said to MO Ruyue,You wait here, Ill go get some firewood.
MO Ruyue nced at Hillghost and nodded. Senior Brother, you go ahead. The two senior brothers were quite bold, actually daring to act alone.
The surroundings became pitch-ck. There was no moon to illuminate the night, so it was pitch ck.
After Shixiong left, MO Ruyue hugged Hillghost.
After hugging Hillghost, he wasnt as scared anymore.
After a while, someone returned.
Junior Sister.
Im here.
It was Ye Junlin who had returned. He was carrying a pile of firewood in his arms.
Very quickly, the fire was finished, but Ye Yunfeng still didnt return.
Why isnt Senior Brother back yet? Did something happen?
MO Ruyue asked worriedly.
Ill go take a look.
After he finished speaking, Ye Junlin stood up and left, leaving MO Ruyue and
Hillghost behind.
After a long time, a figure returned.
You are Senior Brother Yun Feng?
l am Jun Lin.
Ye Junlin said.
MO Ruyue was stunned. The twins were too simr in terms of temperament, tone, and mannerisms.
They were dressed in the same ck and had the same hairstyle.
It was simply a copy and paste. She had just admitted her mistake.
Oh, oh.
l didnt find my brother.
Ye Junlin opened his mouth helplessly and thought that his brother had returned.
Then we can only wait here.
MO Ruyue looked at the dark forest with a worried expression.
Hillghosts stomach was growling with hunger.
It rubbed its belly in grievance.
MO Ruyue patted Hillghosts head and said,When Shixionges back, there will be food.
Squeak
As soon as he finished speaking, he heard heavy footsteps approaching.
Ye Yunfeng appeared in everyones line of sight.
He came back with a wild goat and threw it on the ground. There were many wild fruits in his other hand.
Senior Brother, youre finally back. If you hadnte back, I would have been worried that something had happened to you.
MO Ruyue finally heaved a sigh of relief.
His heart finally settled down.
Ye Yunfeng exined,This goat runs quite fast, its not easy to catch. That was why it had been dyed for such a long time.
You guys eat the wild fruits first. Ill take the goat out to deal with it. As he spoke, Ye Yunfeng put down the fruit, then brought the goat to the stream to clean it.
Ill go over there and help.
Ye Yunfeng also followed.
MO Ruyue took out the leaves she had prepared and used them as bowls and tes.
Then, he plucked the fruit and ced it in a bowl.
There were actually kebabs to eat at night. Just thinking about it made her drool.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but swallow her saliva.
After the goat was cleaned, he roasted fourmb legs first.
And then it was kebabs.
Ye Junlin looked at MO Ruyues skillful operation and couldnt help but say,Looks like Junior Sisters cooking skills are amazing.
Its alright, just so-so.
MO Ruyue smiled.
Looking at the sizzling mutton, the air was filled with the smell of roasted meat, and she could not help but drool.
Alright, you can eat now.
MO Ruyue first gave it to Hillghost, then to her two Senior Brothers, and finally to herself.
This is the first time Ive eaten such delicious roasted mutton!
Ye Junlin praised.
It was just that the taste was rtively light. If he added seasoning, the taste would definitely be even better.
Upon hearing Ye Junlin!s praise, MO Ruyue raised her head and looked at him.
She blinked at him and said,ln the future, I can still make some for Shixiong.
Junior Sister is so good to me.
As Ye Junlin spoke, he looked at Ye Yunfeng provocatively.
He wasnt inferior to Ye Yunfeng in everything. At least he was quite favored by Junior Sister.
l got this goat.
Ye Yunfeng pursed his thin red lips, feeling a little jealous in his heart.
How could Junior Sister treat Ye Junlin so well? His junior sister had never said such words to him.
What can you do? Didnt Junior Sister give you any?
Ye Junlin started to stir up trouble.
You
Ye Yunfengs expression sank.
Wasnt this Ye Junlin a little too arrogant?
MO Ruyue felt a little helpless when she saw the two of them acting like this.
These two twin brothers were actually jealous because of her.
Senior brothers,e,e, lets eat the roastmb leg.
MO Ruyue pretended that she didnt see it and called for the two of them to eat roastedmb leg.
They were jealous, so what did it have to do with her?
It had nothing to do with him.
When they fought because of her, she would stand up and speak up.
At this time, it was not good for her to stand on anyones side. It was easy for the brothers to be on bad terms.
Therefore, he would let them handle this conflict themselves.
MO Ruyue didnt want to care at all.
Hillghost ate the roastedmb leg with relish.
However, it had a big appetite. A roastedmb leg was not enough.
MO Ruyue gave her roastedmb leg to Hillghost.
Hillghost was embarrassed at first, but he ate happilyter on.
They didnt notice that there was someone watching them from the east and west.
The next day, MO Ruyue woke up from her sleep, dreaming that the Demon Commander was dying.
Junior Sister, whats wrong?
Ye Junlin asked with concern.
Ye Yunfeng was also staring at MO Ruyue, because the sound of MO Ruyue waking up had woken them up.
The sky outside was bright.
Mo Ruyue heaved a sigh of relief. She stood up and said,l dreamt that the Demon Lord is dying. We still have to find the divine doctor He Xi as soon as possible.
Whats wrong with the Demon Lords body?
Ye Yunfeng asked. He didnt feel that there was anything wrong with the demon.
Im not too sure about this either. The Nature Demon Lord knows the body of the Demon Lord the best.
MO Ruyue shook her head. After all, she was a demonic cultivator. Her body might be different from ordinary people.
Otherwise, why would hee all the way here to find Miracle Doctor He Xi?
Ye Yunfeng had nothing to say..
Chapter 751 - 751: Lure the Godly Doctor Back First
Chapter 751 - 751: Lure the Godly Doctor Back First
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Hillghost was still sleeping.
MO Ruyue got up and walked outside to wash up by the stream. When she raised her head, the expression on her face froze.
Senior brothers,e and take a look!
Upon being summoned by MO Ruyue, Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin both walked over.
His face was filled with confusion.
Whats vwffong?
Ye Junlin asked.
Look over there. Why has it be an ocean? I remember that its all grass over there!
MO Ruyue pointed at the distance with a look of disbelief.
Overnight, thewn turned into an ocean.
Or was it because they were closer to the sea, but the tide had risen, so thewn had turned into the sea?
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin looked into the distance. Yesterday, it was indeed awn, but now it had be an ocean
A boundless ocean.
Perhaps this ce is closer to the ocean.
Ye Junlin said uncertainly.
Otherwise, he really didnt know how to exin it.
At this moment, a white crane flew over their heads.
This ce is a little strange. I should quickly wake up Gui Gui so that I can find the divine doctor He Xi as soon as possible.
After saying that, MO Ruyue returned to the cave and woke up the mountain ghost that was still sleeping.
Hillghost was in a daze. The environment here was very good, so it slept
soundly at night.
As the group walked forward, the sun gradually rose from the sea level.
Not long after, a thatched cottage appeared in front of them. Beside the thatched cottage were green bamboos. Outside the thatched cottage was a huge vegetable garden.
However, it didnt seem to be any vegetables, but some precious herbs.
Beside the vegetable garden, there was a weing pine.
Two red-crowned cranes were resting on the weing pine.
MO Ruyue felt that this was the thatched cottage of Divine Doctor He Xi.
Senior brothers, I think this is the territory of the divine doctor He Xi.
MO Ruyue straightened her face, her face full of certainty.
How do you confirm? Ye Junlin asked.
He turned to look at MO Ruyue.
Look at this vegetable garden. Would an ordinary person nt all kinds of herbs in his garden?
MO Ruyue raised her eyebrows slightly.
Ordinary people would only grow vegetables in their own vegetable gardens.
What Junior Martial Sister said seems to make sense. Ye Junlin nodded repeatedly.
But Divine Doctor He Xi doesnt seem to be at home.
MO Ruyue looked at the red-crowned crane on the weing pine and said to it,Do you know where your master is?
The red-crowned crane didnt look very smart.
How can I talk to the crane? Im so stupid!
Mo Ruyue pped her forehead.
Not all animals could understand human speech like mountain ghosts.
Her Mountain Ghost was unique.
It doesnt matter, well just wait here for the divine doctor He Xi toe back.
MO Ruyue thought for a moment. It was impossible for the divine doctor not toe back.
Junior Sister, are you hungry? Ye Junlin asked.
Im fine. Im not that hungry.
MO Ruyue nced at the red-crowned crane and Im really hungry,
Ill roast the divine doctors red-crowned crane.
At this moment, the two red-crowned cranes hurriedly flew away, as if they would die if they stayed any longer.
..Mo Ruyue looked at the cranes departing figure and felt a little awkward. She was just joking.
How could he eat red-crowned cranes?
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin both revealed smiles.
Ruyue, look at you. You scared the red-crowned crane away. Ye Junlin said.
I was just joking. Why would I eat a red-crowned crane?
That was a protected animal.
MO Ruyue shrugged helplessly.
Its too scary, too scary
But soon, she came back to her senses. The red-crowned cranes should have understood her words. Otherwise, why would they p their wings and fly away when she mentioned roasting the red-crowned cranes?
After a long time, a man in in clothes walked over.
MO Ruyue and the other two immediately stood up and looked at the man.
The man nced at the three of them and snorted.You outsiders actually want to eat my red-crowned crane?
He red fiercely at MO Mouyue.
MO Ruyue came back to her senses and just joking.
She had thought that He Xi was an old man, but she had not expected him to be so young.
It was a little unexpected.
She had a pair of peach blossom eyes and a fair face. She wore a pearl ribbon on her forehead. In the middle of the pearl ribbon was a red gem that sparkled under the sun. She was wearing a in white dress. Her ck hair was tied up and a few white feathers were used as decorations.
It looked like the white crane youth.
It was even better for young people. There was no need to be too tactful.
Who are you? What are you doing here?
He Xi asked.
A woman and a pair of twins.
MO Ruyue took a step forward. My name is MO Ruyue, and I came from the Devil Realm. Im here to ask the Godly Doctor to treat my Demon Venerable.
Is Ming Sihan sick?
He Xi frowned slightly. How could that dead man be sick?
If he was sick, that man would not be sick.
From the tone of the divine doctor. you should know mv Demon Venerable?
Its just a few meetings.
He Xi snorted coldly.
She didnt know what Ming Sihan was up to.
Thats why Im begging you toe with us, Godly Doctor, MO Ruyue said sincerely. Our Demon Venerable is really dying. No, let hime to me himself!
With that, He Xi walked towards the thatched cottage.
Upon seeing this, MO Ruyue rolled her eyes and said,Miracle Doctor, my Demon Venerable is already paralyzed. If he coulde, he would havee himself. Why would he make mee?
There was no other way. In order to make He Xi leave with her, she could only make the Demon Lord suffer.
Really?
Its absolutely true. My third senior brother can testify!
MO Ruyue looked at Ye Yufeng.
Ye Yunfeng, whose name was called, lowered his gaze and nodded, Thats right.
Wasnt Junior Sister afraid that the Demon Lord would be angry?
It had to be said that his junior sisters courage was not ordinary. She even dared to say such words.
He could only say that he was impressed.
At that time, the Demon Lord would know what would happen.
Miracle Doctor He Xi, I beg you, pleasee with us. Even if you dont want to see us monks, you have to see the face of our Demon Lord.
MO Ruyue said sincerely.
He Xi stopped in his tracks and turned to look at MO Ruyue.lt better be as you said.
Thank you, Miracle Doctor.
A smile appeared on MO Ruyues face.Lets trick the divine doctor back first.
The Demon Lord and He Xi seemed to be old friends. When the time came, the Demon Lord would definitely protect her.
Therefore, MO Ruyue had no worries.
The journey back was much smoother.
MO Ruyue often changed her dressing style and walked in front of the arrest warrant openly, so no one noticed her.
The portraits drawn by those artists were too abstract and ugly.
If it wasnt for the fact that he was dressed in the same way as the portrait, no one would have recognized him.
Along the way, MO Ruyue served He Xi with good food and drinks.
Finally, they returned to the Devil World. MO Ruyue brought He Xi to see the Demon Venerable.
Master, Im back. Ive also brought the divine doctor He Xi back.
MO Ruyue walked into the Demon Pce and looked at the man on the soft couch with a hint of worry in her eyes.
Was Masters condition already so serious?
They were actually lying on the bed.
He Xi looked at the figure and frowned.. Was he really paralyzed?
Chapter 752 - 752: Let Me Be Quiet
Chapter 752 - 752: Let Me Be Quiet
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When Ming Sihan heard MO Ruyues voice, his heart started beating rapidly. He felt as if he was alive again.
He suddenly opened his eyes and saw MO Ruyues figure outside the curtain.
She was finally back.
You can go out first, He Xi said to MO Ruyue.lll show your Demon Venerable whats going on.
Miracle Doctor He Xi, Ill leave the Devil to you.
MO Ruyue then left the Devil Pce.
Seeing MO Ruyue leave, Ming Sihan!s heartbeat returned to normal.
She nced at the other man and saw him approaching.
Are you sick? Paralysis?
He Xi asked. Even though they were separated by the curtain, the aura on Ming Sihans body didnt change at all.
Hearing He Xis words, Ming Sihan was a little unhappy and sick. Who said that Im paralyzed?
Who spread the rumors?
MO Ruyue said that youre paralyzed, but arent you alright?
He Xi lifted the curtain and saw the handsome man behind it. He did not look
like he was paralyzed.
This woman!
Ming Sihan couldnt help but mutter.
Whats wrong with you?
l dont know. I feel very ufortable.
Ming Sihan sighed. When he thought of MO Ruyue, he felt strange.
MO Ruyue was not around these few days, so it was easy to overthink things.
He Xi didnt say anything else. She held Ming Sihans hand and started to feel his pulse.
After a moment, He Xi said, The pulse is stable. Theres nothing wrong.
Is it fun to trick me here?
He Xi threw Ming Sihans hand away and was a little unhappy.
Im not lying to you.
Your disciple lied to me. As her master, arent you going to do something about it?
He Xi pursed her pale pink lips and snorted.
If he had known earlier, he wouldnt havee here.
Ming Sihan was very protective,He Xi, youre already a hundred years old. How can you be so calctive with a little girl?
Ming Sihan, you
He Xis hands that were hanging by his side clenched into fists, and he really wanted to punch that handsome face.
Youre not sick. Im leaving.
With that, He Xi walked out.
Ming Sihan waved his sleeves and clenched his fists. The corners of his mouth curled up. Youre already here. Its not that easy to leave!
He Xi was frozen in ce, as if her body was tightly bound by an invisible hand.
His face turned red and he said to Ming you sick?
Yeah, 1 1 m sick.
Ming Sihan sat up and walked slowly to He Xi. He tilted his head and said,Godly doctor, treat me. If you dont treat me, Ill die.
Looking at the man in front of her, He Xi only wanted to smash this man into pieces.
The dead are good, the world is short of a scourge.
Youre so heartless.
Ming Sihan stopped smiling and released He Xi from her control.
He continued,Whats there to stay in that god-forsaken ce in the West?
In the future, you will obediently stay in my Demon Realm.
What benefits?
What benefits do you want?
He Xi thought for a moment. It was rare for Ming Sihan to be so generous, so he naturally wouldnt stand on ceremony. If you have something, I must have it.
Sure.
Ming Sihan agreed.
l want to take MO Ruyue as my disciple!
Hearing the name MO Ruyue, Ming Sihan spoke without hesitation.
You said it was okay.
l really cant do that.
Alright, Ill change. Ill let MO Ruyue be my cook.
No.
Wasnt this asking his disciple to serve Crane Creek?
No.
Why?
Shes not a chef.
Ming Sihan frowned. What was this man thinking? It was really amazing.
Then I want to live with your disciple, is that okay?
Ming Sihan grabbed He Xis cor and said fiercely,No!
This wont do, that wont do. Why should I stay in your Demon Realm?
He Xi was speechless.
What was possible?
Ming Sihan was speechless. He thought for a while and said,You can do whatever you want except for MO Ruyue.
Then Ill stay with you. Get lost!
He was a normal man.
Ming Sihan, there is nothing in the devil world that can keep me here.
You still wont let me go? I think youre really sick.
He Xis face was filled with disgust.
Ming Sihan let go of He Xis cor and can sleep in my side hall.
This was his biggest setback.
l dont want to. I despise you.
A man with a brain problem might kill him at night.
He Xi walked over to the chair beside her and sat down. 1 think I know whats wrong with you. What about me?
Heart disease.
Heart disease? Ming Sihan covered his chest and frowned. He said to He this illness serious? How should I treat it?
Mental illness needs medicine to cure it. Your medicine is MO Ruyue. I deliberately mentioned MO Ruyue just now, but every time I mentioned her, you would explode.
He knew Ming Sihan quite well.
Why is this happening?
Youre moved, youre in love, understand?
Impossible, absolutely impossible. How could 1 do that to MO Ruyue Tempted?
It is said that dragons are slow in their emotions. I think it is true.
He Xi secretly shook his head and revealed a helpless expression.
Ming Sihan sat down and said with a heavy heart,Then what should we do?
What can we do? It was not a bad thing to just let nature take its course. She called him over for such a small matter.
MO Ruyue stayed outside, worried about the Demon Commanders safety.
If the Demon Lord really couldnt do it, then she would be the new master of the Demon World in the future. At that time, there would definitely be many people who were unconvinced. In order to make those people convinced, she still needed to do a lot of things.
As for the Demon Pce, it was too deserted and had to be renovated.
She definitely wouldnt sleep in a ce where the Demon Lord had slept before. She had to renovate it before she could continue sleeping.
Not long after, the divine doctor He Xi came out.
MO Ruyue hurried forward and pulled He Xi back. Godly doctor, how is my master?
He Xi looked at the woman in front of her carefully. She was beautiful, but just like Ming Sihan, she was slow to react.
It seemed that Ming Sihans love life was destined to be bumpy.
He couldnt help with this kind of thing. He was powerless.
He shook his head.
Godly doctor, my master cant be saved?
MO Ruyue was stunned. She didnt know if she was happy or sad.
Or rather, it was a mixture of sadness and joy.
Her master had treated her quite well. It was a pity that she was gone at such a young age.
Once her master left, she became her masters only heir and had a worth of over a hundred million.
Only you can save your master.
Me?
MO Ruyue looked incredulous. She didnt know how to treat patients, so why was she asked to save the Demon Venerable?
You go in and take a look. Ill go out for a walk.
After saying that, the divine doctor He Xi left the Devil Pce.
He didnt n to return to the Western Ze Region at the moment, so he decided to stay here for the time being.
MO Ruyue walked into the room nervously and nced at the man in the room.
The man was in the dark, and his expression could not be seen clearly.
Master, are you alright?
MO Ruyue asked in a low voice.
Let me be quiet.
Ming Sihan couldnt ept the fact that he was tempted.
Master, Ill be leaving first.
MO Ruyue left obediently.
Ming Sihan turned around. Did this woman really leave just because he asked her to?
He didnt miss it at all.
Humph!
Ming Sihan angrily flung his sleeves, feeling even more frustrated..
Chapter 753 - 753: Warm the Bed
Chapter 753 - 753: Warm the Bed
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Come back to me!
Master?
MO Ruyue retracted her leg and looked at Ming Sihan in confusion. What was wrong with her master today?
It felt weird.
Im hungry.
Ming Sihan stared at the woman in front of him carefully. The more he looked at her, the faster his heart beat.
The womans beautiful face was filled with confusion, and her brows were tightly furrowed.
Then Ill go cook for Master? Or did Master want to eat the Devil Realms big pot of rice?
The godly doctor said that only she could save Ming Sihan. Was it because the demon wanted to eat her cooking?
Wouldnt he be treating her like a mother?
You made it.
He recalled the dishes that MO Ruyue had cooked. He had to admit that MO Ruyues culinary skills were really good.
Perhaps, delicious food could make him feel better, especially if it was made by MO Ruyue.
Alright then.
MO Ruyue responded and turned around to prepare some food.
Stop right there.
Master, what is it?
MO Ruyue stopped in her tracks, feeling a little impatient.
Master was indeed a little sick. Where are you going?
Go get food for Master.
Ill go with you.
Ming Sihan stood up and followed MO Ruyue.
It seemed that he would not feel so ufortable if MO Ruyue was right under his nose.
Master, I heard that youve issued a new rule. You cant fall in love in the Devil Realm? MO Ruyue suddenly asked on the way.
This man was really selfish. He was single and wanted others to be single too.
In the future, the number of people in the Demon Realm would decrease, and that was also because of this man.
Yes.
Why?
Whats wrong with not seeing your subordinates fall in love?
Uh What if his master had a wife?
Wouldnt he be scamming himself too?
MO Ruyue thought to herself,Whats the point of Master doing this?
Then change the rules again.
Ming Sihan stared at the back of her, trying to prevent her from falling in love with other men.
He was the one who set the rules, so he could naturally change them.
Master
MO Ruyue opened her mouth. She wanted to say that her Master was really despicable, but she did not dare to be so impudent.
He had never seen such a person who was strict with others but lenient with himself!
Hearing MO Ruyues tone, it seemed that she was very dissatisfied with him.
He slightly raised his eyebrows and wrong?
Its nothing. Its just that youre really wise, Master.
As expected of a Demon Venerable, he was indeed extraordinary.
Then, MO Ruyue told Ming Sihan about Ye Junlin.
You can decide on this matter. Theres no need to report it to me.
That wont do. Youre the master of the Demon World. As long as someone joins, I still have to report it.
MO Ruyueplimented.
Its been hard on you to invite the divine doctor over this time.
Ming Sihan said lightly. This woman had gone to such a far ce for him. Just thinking about it made him feel touched.
He must have suffered a lot along the way.
He would definitely treat this woman well in the future.
MO Ruyue waved her hand and said with a not hard, its not hard.
Its what I should do.
If it werent for her status, she wouldnt have bothered to take on such a job.
Wasnt he forced to go to the Western Ze Region?
Ming Sihan didnt feel unfamiliar when he arrived at the ce where she
lived. He had been with this woman for a period of time.
Although the ce was not spacious, the environment was indeed quite elegant.
Sister
A handsome young man ran out of the courtyard and threw himself into MO Ruyues arms.
The young man hugged MO Ruyue tightly, not letting go for even a moment.
When Ming Sihan saw this scene, his eyes became sharp as he stared at the handsome young man.
What was this guy?
He actually touched MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue was still smiling, seemingly enjoying being hugged by the young man.
This scene made Ming Sihan want to tear it apart! Then, he reached out and grabbed Li Zeyans cor.
Sister, help!
Li Zeyan looked at Ming Sihan and his pupils shrank. Then, he quickly asked MO Ruyue for help.
This man seemed to be a demonic beast too!
All non-humans who could transform into humans were demonic beasts.
Master?
MO Ruyue looked at the scene in front of her in confusion. Bullying a child?
Ming Sihan let go of Li Zeyan with a serious face. He would never admit that he was jealous.
He just couldnt stand males getting close to his little disciple.
Where did this little bastarde from?
His deep eyes were filled with disgust.
It had the smell of a demonic beast. What was it?
His name is Li Zeyan. I picked him up on the road.
You picked it up on the road and brought it she afraid that this demonic beast would eat her? Ming Sihan was a little unhappy.
The child is all alone
MO Ruyue told him about Li Zeyans tragic past and finally sighed deeply.
This childs background was described as sad and tearful.
In the end, Ming Sihanughed coldly. Demonic beasts didnt have any family!
His pitch-ck eyes had already seen through everything.
Hearing Ming Sihans cold smile, MO Ruyue felt that this man had no love at all.
Li Zeyans background was so tragic. It was fine if the demon did notfort him, but he actually sneered.
As expected of the Demon Venerable, he was ruthless enough! MO Ruyue admired him from the bottom of her heart.
Sister, Im afraid of being a goner
Li Zeyan quickly went behind MO Ruyue, his childish face full of fear. This is my master, the Demon Lord of the Demon Realm!
See, isnt my Master very handsome? Its not as scary as the rumors say. She introduced with a smile on her face.
The legendary demon lord was ferocious and didnt look like a normal person at all.
In reality, the Demon Venerable was handsome and unadulterated, and he was not as ruthless as the rumors said.
At least she felt that this man was still someone she could get along with. She just had to pay attention to her boundaries when interacting with him and not push her luck.
After all, he was a demon lord. He was not some random cat or dog that could be stroked just because he was given food.
Li Zeyan panicked under the gaze of the pair of dark eyes. He could only hide behind MO Ruyue, not daring to poke his head out.
Sister, Im afraid of being a goner
Seeing how scared Li Zeyan was, MO Ruyue said,Then go in first. Go to the vegetable garden and pick some vegetables to put in the kitchen.
Alright.
Li Zeyan left in a hurry. Even though he was far away, he could still feel that cold gaze.
MO Ruyue didnt know that Li Zeyan was so afraid of Ming Sihan. Maybe he didnt know Ming Sihan well enough.
He wouldnt be so afraid after understanding.
Master, pleasee in. You can sit in the courtyard now. Ill cook for you.
MO Ruyue wore a ttering smile on her face and whispered,Master, can you increase the monthly sry?
To make her work in the hall and kitchen, it was difficult to do things with a hundred taels of silver a month.
Ming Sihan raised his eyebrows slightly. This woman really loved money.
How much do you want?
200 taels. Ill do theundry, cook, and clean up the house. How about it?
As long as the money was in ce, everything was negotiable.
Now, MO Ruyue had be a social animal again. Youre taking care of everything around me?
Yes, as long as I dont lose my life.
MO Ruyue nodded. She had worked hard to earn money, but she had to save her life to spend it.
Ming Sihans lips curled up slightly. In other words, even if the weather was cold and the bed was cold, he could still warm the bed?
Marming the bed wouldnt cost him his life.
Alright, words are useless. We have to write it down in ck and white.
Ming Sihan had his own wishful thinking.
This woman said it herself, so she couldnt go back on her words.
At this moment, MO Ruyue had not thought about anything else.. Who knew that this man had a human face and a beast heart?
Chapter 754 - 754: Let the Demon Lord Burn the Fire
Chapter 754 - 754: Let the Demon Lord Burn the Fire
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
But I dont have paper or pen here. Theres no need to write this on paper.
Master, are you worried about me?
Afraid that she would bezy? And then deduct his sry?
MO Ruyue clicked her tongue in her heart. She did not expect the Demon Commander to be such an evil capitalist.
Of course, people change. Im afraid youll regret it!
Impossible, absolutely impossible. I definitely wont regret it.
MO Ruyue shook her head. Only a fool would regret a free money-making opportunity.
A pen and paper appeared in Ming Sihan!s hands, and he quickly wrote down the proof.
Alright, sign it.
Mine Sihan handed a pen washi to MO Ruvue.
MO Ruyue took the pen washi. She felt that something was amiss. Was there a need to write a contract between master and disciple?
Whats wrong? Are you regretting it?
Seeing that MO Ruyue was still not signing, Ming Sihan was a little anxious, but he still looked calm.
MO Ruyue stared at the contract and said,l think theres a date missing. 200 taels was only enough for a year. After a year, the price would have to rise.
A year?
Ming Sihan frowned slightly. He felt that his life would be better.
Forget it, he couldnt be anxious.
One year then.
Thus, MO Ruyue signed a one-year contract for 200 taels of silver.
Anyway, it was only a year, not too long.
[Salted Fish System: Congrattions to the yer forpleting the mission and obtaining the permanent experience of the heavenly punishment.]
After signing her name, MO Ruyue realized that she hadpleted her task. She was overwhelmed by the unexpected favor.
Had hepleted the mission without realizing it?
This surprise came a little too suddenly.
She almost forgot that her mission was stuck at this stage because she had passed the mission once she signed the contract.
If she had known it would be so easy, she would have signed the contract earlier.
She really liked the idea of experiencing heavenly punishment forever.
MO Ruyues mood soared.
Ming Sihan kept the contract. Why was this woman so happy to sell herself?
Could it be that this woman had been waiting for this moment?
Who exactly designed this?
Master, wait here. Ill go cook for you now.
MO Ruyue was in a good mood afterpleting the mission.
Seeing that figure leave, why did Ming Sihan feel like he was at a disadvantage?
However, this was exactly what he wanted.
At that time, he hoped that this woman would take the initiative.
Ming Sihan thought happily in his heart.
At this moment, the door to the courtyard was pushed open. Shen Yunyan entered with a displeased expression and shouted, EMO Ruyue,e out! She didnt even notice Ming Sihan, who was under the grape rack. She didnt expect Ming Sihan toe to this shabby ce.
What are you shouting for?
Ming Sihan scolded her, his face unhappy.
Seeing Shen Yunyan, Ming Sihan remembered something.
He didnt seem to have seen a thousand earthworms.
Shen Yunyan turned her head and saw Ming Sihan there. She was so scared that her face turned pale. She quickly knelt down and said,DemonDemon
Venerable.
Why would the Demon Lord appear here?
Her little face was pale with fright. MO Ruyue must have arranged this on purpose!
Damn it, this woman was so scheming.
Why are you looking for my disciple?
Ming Sihan said slowly.
This subordinate, this subordinate only came to see if Senior Sister has returned.
Shen Yunyan quickly found an excuse for herself.
MO Ruyue was really lucky. Not only did she be the Saintess, she was now the only disciple of the Demon Lord.
Why should MO Ruyue take all the benefits?
Ming Sihan did not believe Shen Yunyans excuse of having his teeth broken. It was obvious from his tone that he wanted to cause trouble for his disciple. If I remember correctly, you still owe me a thousand earthworms, right?
Shen Yunyans expression was ugly. She did not catch a thousand earthworms at all.
She had been back for a few days, but the Demon Lord had not mentioned this matter, so she thought that the Demon Lord had forgotten.
He did not expect the Demon Venerable to still remember.
Ill see 1,000 earthworms tomorrow. If I cant catch them, Ill cripple your cultivation and feed you to the dogs!
Yes, this subordinate will immediately go and dig up the earthworms.
Hurry up and get lost!
Yes.
After Shen Yunyan left, MO Ruyue came out of the kitchen.
She held a spoon in her hand and looked at the silver-haired Ming Sihan. She asked someone call my name outside just now?
She could vaguely hear Shen Yunyans voice. She did not know if she had heard wrongly, but there was no sign of Shen Yunyan outside.
No, you heard wrong.
Ming Sihan nced at MO Ru Yue.
Alright, I misheard.
MO Ruyue turned around and returned to the kitchen.
Ming Sihan silently looked at MO Ruyues back. There were two figures in the kitchen.
He lowered his eyes and thought for a moment, then got up and walked towards the kitchen.
Master, what are you doing here? The smell of oil and smoke is very strong.
MO Ruyue nced at the man at the door. The man had blocked the light from the door.
Frowning slightly, she quickly stir-fried the tiger skin pepper in the pot.
He poured some water and simmered it.
Mo Ruyue couldnt help but sneeze at the smell of oil and smoke.
Li Zeyan stared at the man at the door with vignce.
When Li Zeyan looked at Ming Sihan, Ming Sihan was also looking at Li Zeyan. His sharp eyes narrowed.
So what if it smells like oil? Do you think I cant smell oil and smoke?
No, the smell of oil and smoke is too strong.
MO Ruyue sniffed. This man looked so otherworldly. It was indeed inappropriate for him to appear in the kitchen.
Its fine.
Ming Sihan walked in. His dark red eyes fell on the pot and he inside?
Tiger skin pepper is very delicious and goes well with rice.
Seeing that it was about time, Ru Yue opened the lid of the pot and added a little salt. Then, she presented the tiger skin pepper.
Smelling this fragrance, she felt like she could eat three bowls of rice.
It smells good.
Ming Sihan said faintly.
Master, why dont you go out?
The kitchen wasnt big to begin with, and Ming Sihan was like a log when he came in, preventing her from cooking.
He looked like a fool.
Ming Sihan listened to MO Ruyues words and felt puzzled. Was he that disliked?
Why should I go out? Cant we let him out?
He raised his chin arrogantly and looked at Li Zeyan.
There was clearly another person here, but MO Ruyue only asked him to leave.
He was naturally not convinced.
Zeyan wants to help me light a fire. He went out. Master, are you going to help me light a fire? Its not easy to control the fire.
This man didnt seem to have cooked before, so he naturally didnt know how to cook.
The doubt in MO Ruyues words made Ming Sihan very dissatisfied.
Its just a fire. Whats so difficult about it? Let him go out. Ill start the fire.
Sister
Li Zeyan was furious. This man actually wanted to fight with him for the job of lighting the fire!
MO Ruyue said helplessly to Li Zeyan,Zeyan, go out and rest. Let the demon start the fire.
He couldnt figure out why the Demon Lord didnt rest well and insisted oning to light a fire. Wasnt this just finding something for him to do?
She couldnt understand this man.
Oh.
Li Zeyan had no choice but to get up and leave the kitchen. He had already cursed Ming Sihan a dozen times in his heart.
She even wanted to fight with him for a job like burning a fire.
Did that man really have nothing to do?
Chapter 755 - 755: Are You Kicking Me Out Again?
Chapter 755 - 755: Are You Kicking Me Out Again?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
For the second dish, MO Ruyue prepared to make Fish Head Tofu Soup.
Master, you can increase the heat.
Mo Ruyue said and looked at Ming Sihan.
Yes.
Ming Sihan responded and looked around. He picked up the firewood that hadnt been split and directly stabbed it into the stove.
MO Ruyue opened her mouth but didnt say anything in the end.
Sometimes, it was necessary to teach some self-righteous people a lesson. Otherwise, they would always think that they could do anything.
Soon, the fire died down, and green smoke rose from the stove.
The smoke was so thick that tears were flowing out of her eyes. She couldnt open her eyes at all.
She couldnt take it anymore and went outside the station.
Ming Sihan saw MO Ru Yue go out, so he used his cultivation on the stove to make the fire bigger.
The fire was indeed strong. With a bang, a hole was blown open in the pot.
Outside, Li Zeyan and MO Ruyue looked at each other and then turned to the kitchen, which was filled with thick smoke.
What was going on?
Sister, whats wrong with the kitchen?
The Demon Lord must have blown up the kitchen.
MO Ruyue said nkly.
She had juste out and the kitchen was already exploding.
For the sake of Demon Venerable Ming Sihan and his own master, he couldnt me him.
After that, Ming Sihan came out of the kitchen. His face was calm and he coughed lightly. Its not difficult to start a fire.
MO Ruyue and Li Zeyan looked at each other.
Indeed, it was not difficult to start a fire, but it was difficult to control the temperature.
Thinking of the tiger skin pepper, Ruyue rushed into the kitchen and saved the tiger skin pepper.
Master, why did you burn down the kitchen?
MO Ruyue revealed a helpless expression. Holding the tiger skin pepper, she continued,We only have this one dish.
The kitchen was on fire, and the pot had exploded.
She was filled with helplessness.
The fire spread and soon, MO Ruyues kitchen was burnt down. Even her own house was affected.
It wasnt that MO Ruyue didnt want to put out the fire, but that the fire was burning faster than normal mes.
The thick smoke attracted many people.
MO Chengfeng, Bai Lixi, Ye Yunfeng, Ye Junlin, Jing Xichen, Xia Zhixing, Qi Shaoyu, Crane Creek
Basically, everyone who was supposed to be here was here.
When everyone came over and saw that the Demon Venerable was also here, they did not know what to say for a moment.
Ruyue, what happened?
MO Chengfeng was dressed in a dark green robe and held the silver bone fracture fan tightly in his hand. When he saw the scene in front of him, his eyes turned slightly cold.
This situation didnt seem right.
MO Ruyue turned around and looked at everyone, feeling extremely depressed.
Was he going to say that the demon lord burned the kitchen in front of everyone? If that happened, Ming Sihan would feel embarrassed.
l identally burned the kitchen when I was cooking.
MO Ruyue smiled awkwardly.
Li Zeyan, who was at the side, I had started the fire, this wouldnt have happened.
He barely mentioned Ming Sihan, but everyone seemed to understand something.
Ruyues cooking skills were so good that it was impossible for her to burn down the kitchen.
Li Zeyan also stated that he was not the one who started the fire. There was only one truth. The demon was the man who burned down Ruyues kitchen.
The others didnt dare to say that they were in the position of a chaoswoman, but He Xi did.
Therefore, he mocked, My Lord Demon Venerable, I didnt expect you to know how to cook. Youre quite capable.
Ming Sihans face darkened. Did this guy do it on purpose?
So what if I burn down the entire Demon Realm?
He was the owner of the entire Demonic Realm!
Uh, its indeed not much, but youre really a talent. Only you can burn the kitchen.
He Xi shook his head.
Ming Sihans face turned pale after being ridiculed by He Xi.
MO Ruyue quickly tried to smooth things over and fine. Its just a kitchen. Moreover, its Masters first time entering a kitchen.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Ming Sihans expression turned better and he looked at MO Ruyue with satisfaction.
As expected, his disciple still cared about him.
Master, it looks like youll have to taste my cooking next time.
Mo Ruyue said regretfully. The kitchen was burnt down, how could she cook?
He had to find someone to build a new kitchen.
You can cook in the Demon Pce.
Inside the Devil Pce?
MO Ruyue raised her eyebrows slightly.
The others looked at each other in dismay. The demon actually asked Ruyue to cook in the demon pce.
Is Junior Sister Ruyues cooking very good?
Baili Xi asked curiously. His voice was very soft, and MO Chengfeng, who was standing beside him, could hear him clearly.
Not just any good. MO Chengfeng nodded.
After all, he had eaten the food made by Junior Sister Ruyue. If he ate the food made by others, it would be very boring. If theres a chance, I want to try it too. Baili Xijian revealed a thoughtful expression.
He stared deeply at MO Ruyue.
Previously, he had only felt that his junior sister was a little different. Now, he knew that his junior sisters cooking skills were also top-notch.
When He Xi heard what Ming Sihan said, she said,Then Ill also benefit from it.
He had tasted MO Ruyue i s cooking before, so he had nothing to say.
Initially, he wanted MO Ruyue to be his cook, but Ming Sihan didnt agree.
Actually, as long as he could eat MO Ruyues cooking, it would be good enough.
It didnt matter whether she was his cook or not.
Ming Sihan nced at He Xi and said coldly, You can leave the demon world now.
Back then, you were the one who asked me to stay. Now that Im willing to stay in the Demon Realm, youre chasing me away?
He Xi revealed a look of disbelief. This man was too fickle.
Before, he was not allowed to leave, but now he was chased away!
He stared at Ming Sihan. This man was really too much.
Who did he think he was?
A pet that could be summoned and waved away at will?
Ming Sihan said calmly, There is nothing wrong with my body. You can indeed leave.
Im not leaving!
He Xi liked to go against Ming Sihan. Back then, Ming Sihan was the one who asked him to stay, and now, Ming Sihan was the one who asked him to leave.
This man was simply sick.
He was really not that easy to deal with.
There was no way he could kill the donkey after it was done grinding.
Up to you then.
Ming Sihan didnt pay attention to He Xi. He was nning to build a kitchen in the Demon Pce.
Then he turned around and looked at the subordinates behind him. He frowned slightly and asked, Are you all okay?
Yes, yes
Everyone responded and then dispersed.
The demon lord seemed to be quite gentle to Ru Yue.
Only He Xi remained where she was.
Are you very free?
Of course I have nothing to do, I just wander around.
He Xi replied and looked at Ming Sihan fearlessly.
He wasnt like his subordinates, and he didnt need to look at Ming Sihans face.
Dont order me around. I wont listen to your orders.
Seeing that Ming Sihan was about to say something, He Xi took the initiative to stop him.
The Demon Worlds assessment was about to arrive.
Everyone was making preparations.
In the previous assessment, MO Ruyue was always worried that she would not make it. At that time, she did not have the SalSalted Fish System, so she did not have a cheat code. Moreover, in order to maintain a low profile, she rarely spoke to her other senior brothers.
Therefore, no one formed a team with her during the assessment.
Fortunately, she was lucky enough to pass the assessment..
Chapter 756 - 756: Sharing the Rain and Dew
Chapter 756 - 756: Sharing the Rain and Dew
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Shen Yunhua spent a day and a night before finally catching a thousand earthworms.
For the sake of these 1,000 earthworms, she had almost dug up the entire back mountain by herself.
He went to see Ming Sihan with his panda eyes and knelt down respectfully. He said weakly,Demon Venerable, Ive caught a thousand earthworms.
Ming Sihan didnt look at the earthworm. He stared at Shen Yunyan and said slowly, Now you know what earthworms look like, right? Shen Yunyan was confused by this question.
She had always known what earthworms looked like.
An still nodded and said,l understand.
Its good that you know. Take the earthworms and get out.
Seeing that Shen Yunyan knew the earthworm, he finally felt a lot better.
Finally, this woman knew what an earthworm looked like.
He wouldnt be so ignorant in the future, right?
After hearing Ming Sihans words, Shen Yunyan felt as if she had been pardoned. She could finally have a good rest.
Her hands were full of blisters, and the mud under her fingernails had yet toe out.
Ever since the Demon Pce opened a kitchen, MO Ruyue had been cooking in the Demon Pce. Ming Sihan even let her stay in the Demon Pce.
Of course, MO Ruyue didnt care too much about this. It wasnt a bad idea to stay here.
The content of the assessment this time is different from usual. Lets go to the Immortal Alliance Conference.
An unfathomable look shed across Ming Sihans eyes.
MO Ruyue felt a chill run down her spine when she heard that he was going to participate in the Immortal Alliance Conference. This shouldnt expose his identity as a spy, right?
Since it was the Immortal Alliance Conference, Xuanling Immortal Sect would definitely participate.
Thinking of this, MO Ruyue felt a little troubled.
What shoulde would stille.
Master, why is our Demon Realm participating in the Immortal Alliance Conference? If we go, wont we be ruining their business? MO Ruyue asked.
She wanted to convince Ming Sihan to give up on this idea.
This was not good news for her.
Were going there to cause trouble.
He smiledzily and leaned back on the armchair, his dark red eyes carrying a strange light.
MO Ruyue opened her mouth, wanting to say something, but in the end, she was speechless.
In any case, she had already changed her face. Those senior brothers of Xuanling Immortal Sect could not recognize her at all.
MO Ruyue thought to herself.
The Immortal Alliance Conference was just around the corner, and all the great immortal sects in Nine Regions were ready to participate.
Among them, Xuanling Immortal Sect, Spirit Path Immortal Sect, September Immortal Sect, and Tomato Immortal Sect were the most famous and had the most experts.
The Immortal Alliance Conference was divided into two rounds. The first round was to enter the forbidden area and kill demonic creatures. The person with the highest score would win.
The second round was a single personpetition between disciples from two different sects.
If the first round was to highlight an individuals ability, then the second round was to highlight the strength of an immortal sects team.
The Immortal Alliance Conference could be said to be quite exciting, and it would attract many people to watch.
He just didnt know if this years Immortal Alliance Conference would be as usual.
Every disciple of an immortal sect wanted to stand out in this immortal sect meeting.
MO Ruyue did not look forward to the Immortal Alliance Conference at all. She only prayed that she would not be recognized.
The fifth move of the Neb Sword Technique. Your hands must be steady, steady
Ming Sihan looked at that figure and reminded her constantly.
His expression was serious. Only by being strict with MO Ruyue could she improve further.
He Xi flew down from the roof and saw this scene. He couldnt help but tease,Yo, youre even personally guiding me?
Go away, dont block my sight.
Ming Sihan nced at He Xi and then looked away.
Facing Ming Sihans urging, He Xi did not get angry. Her gaze fell on the red figure. MO Ruyues training was really good.
He approached Ming Sihan and said slowly,Well, I heard that youre going to the Immortal Alliance Conference to cause trouble?
Cant 1?
Ming Sihan then shifted his gaze to He Xi, his eyebrows raised slightly.
Speaking of which, how did this guy know?
He Xis face sank and her expression became serious. You shouldnt be like this. You picked the wrong time.
Whats wrong? Why dont you tell me?
Ling Shoumo of Xuanling Celestial Sect isnt in closed door cultivation right now, and hell be attending this Celestial Alliance Conference. Isnt it a bit risky for you to do this?
He Xis eyes were filled with worry.
Moreover, when the time came, the experts of the immortal sects would gather, and it would probably be dangerous.
Do you think Im afraid of him?
Ming Sihan smiled contemptuously, not putting Ling Shoumo in his eyes at all.
That man was always so full of himself.
He always thought that everything he did was right.
Going against him was wrong.
He had been unhappy with Ling Shoumo for a long time.
After all, there are many people in the immortal sects. Those immortal sects have many people. Im afraid your subordinates will suffer.
He Xi sighed. Ming Sihan was indeed very powerful, and he was on par with Ling Shoumo.
However, Ling Shoumo!s subordinates might not be the same.
There wasnt even a single Golden Core cultivator.
They were all Aura Refining and Foundation Building cultivators.
There were quite a number of Golden Core cultivators in the immortal sects.
If they fought, the Demon Realm would definitely suffer a little.
Ming Sihan looked at the red figure and said thoughtfully,l dont know if others will suffer, but she wont.
He had always known about MO Ruyues secret.
She was a very mysterious woman who aroused his strong interest.
The more he understood her, the more infatuated he felt.
She was like a strong liquor, making people addicted and sink into it bit by bit.
Looking at Ming Sihans infatuated eyes, He Xi shook her head.
This man had fallen into the ocean of love and could not be rescued from the ship.
However, it was also good. He had been alone for almost a hundred years. It was time to find a woman.
When he was in heat, he would die without a woman.
They, the cranes, were the best. They did not have to have a woman in their lives.
Alright, since you insist, then I have nothing else to say. He Xi sighed and did not continue to persuade him.
Anyway, if he said it, it would be said by the white.
Everything depended on Ming Sihan.
If you have nothing to do, go out. This has nothing to do with you.
Seeing that He Xi wasnt going to leave, Ming Sihan immediately asked her to leave.
He Xi rubbed his belly and said,I want to stay here for dinner.
Is there no ce to eat in the Demon Realm?
Yes, but if you went to eat it once, Im impressed that you can go a second time.
He Xi snorted. He didnt expect the food in the Devil Realm to be so unptable. No wonder MO Ruyues cooking was so good.
MO Ruyue must not like to eat the food of the Devil Realm, so she must have practiced her culinary skills.
Today, he had just eaten a dish of orange, cabbage, pork stew, green pepper and fried apple.
She ate until she doubted her life.
The Demon Realm is too unbearable.
Ming Sihan felt that He Xi was deliberately looking for trouble because she wanted to eat MO Ruyues cooking.
He Xi was about to retort when MO Ruyue walked over and said,Master, I think Ive almost mastered it.
Yes, you are indeed very talented, but are you sure you want to use both swords at the same time?
MO Ruyue had originally used the Ghost Sense sword, but now that she had the Heaven-cleaving Sword. she had also started using the Heaven-cleaving
Sword.
Using two swords was definitely harder than using a single sword.
Especially his left hand, it was very easy for him to lose his bnce.
However, if this was Ruyues choice, he would definitely help her.
Of course. I want to share the rain and dew equally. I want to use both swords.
MO Ruyue replied.
What was important was that she wanted to be the Dual Sword Style
Sword Lady..
Chapter 757 - 757: Embarrassing the Demon Lord
Chapter 757 - 757: Embarrassing the Demon Lord
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Then, MO Ruyue looked at He Xi and said, Miracle Doctor He Xi, youre here
Yeah, I havent eaten yet. Im a little hungry.
Thats good. Ill cookter. Why dont you stay for dinner?
MO Ruyue said straightforwardly. Anyway, cooking for two people wasnt a big deal. It wasnt much to cook for three people.
He Xi had been waiting for these words. Since MO Ruyue had said so, he agreed. Alright, then I wont be polite.
After she finished speaking, she even cast a smug look at Ming Sihan.
Ruyue was generous, unlike Ming Sihan who was so petty.
It was just a meal, was there a need to be so stingy?
As long as the food in the demon world was edible, he would note here to freeload.
Ming Sihan looked unhappy. If he had known earlier, he would have chased He Xi away.
Back then, she had only wanted to keep this man in the Demon Realm because she was crazy.
Now, he regretted it.
However, He Xi was already prepared to stay here and not leave.
Master, Ill go cook first.
Yes.
MO Ruyue went to the kitchen next door.
In order to make it easier for her to cook, the Demon Lord had someone build a kitchen in the Demon Pce.
After MO Ruyue left, He Xi rubbed her chin and said,Ming Sihan, youre quite resourceful. How did you make Ruyue cook for you willingly?
Im not telling you.
Ming Sihan nced at He Xi, then got up and walked towards the kitchen.
Are you going to blow up the kitchen?
Ill go help!
He Xi didnt have a single human word in his mouth.
Looking at Ming Sihans back, He Xi secretly shook her head.
She didnt expect this fierce man to be such a sentimental man.
At least, this was the first time he had seen this man so concerned about a woman.
MO Ruyue saw Ming Sihan enter and her expression became tense. She said,You, what are you doing in here?
Forget it, theres no need. Ill be fine here alone. If it really doesnt work, we can call Li Zeyan over to light the fire.
When MO Ruyue thought of how this man had blown up the pot and burned down the kitchen, she did not dare to let him into the kitchen.
It was terrifying just thinking about it.
Hearing the name Li Zeyan, Ming Sihans face darkened.
When others doubted him, he would be more and more eager to prove himself.
Especially when Ruyue questioned him, he felt extremely upset.
Its just making a fire. I know how to do it!
Ming Sihan snorted and started to burn the firewood.
Who are you looking down on?
A dignified Demon Venerable couldnt be stumped by fire.
Seeing Ming Sihans expression, MO Ruyue frowned. Shouldnt Master be more aloof?
Her persona had copsed.
In front of others, the Demon Venerable was still the same as before. However, in front of her, the Demon Venerable was different from the usual Demon Venerable.
Fortunately, he did not be a clown.
Only when the bloodthirsty and cruel Demon Lord turned into a clown would he destroy his character.
Seeing Ming Sihans frown, MO Ruyue couldnt stand it anymore. She was ready to teach Ming Sihan a lesson.
Wasnt it better to just sit outside and wait for the food to be ready?
She insisted oning to the kitchen to start a fire.
Master, this fire should be burned like this. Ill demonstrate it and you watch carefully.
MO Ruyue was very patient. She did it step by step.
Ming Sihan turned his head and nced at MO Ruyue. His disciple was really amazing. She even knew how to light a fire.
MO Ruyue turned around and saw Ming Sihan looking at her with a strange expression.
She was slightly stunned. She calmed herself down and said,Master, why are you looking at me like that?
Being stared at by a handsome man, MO Ruyue couldnt help but feel her heart beat faster.
This man was simply a vixen. His dark red eyes were deep and charming, his thin lips were half-pursed with a hint of temptation, and his high nose bridge made his facial features even more prominent.
She blushed and turned around.
He thought to himself, Demon Venerable is so cool!
Such a handsome man was actually her master. When she obtained the position of Demon Lord in the future, would she be able to do whatever she wanted to her master?
At this moment, MO Ruyues heart was filled with ambition. She naturally couldnt let anyone else take advantage of such a handsome man.
With power and money, wouldnt she still want a man in the end?
She wanted to oppress her unruly master under her body. When she thought of her master begging for mercy in his disheveled clothes, her blood could not help but boil.
It was just that she was too weak now and could not expose her ambition too much.
Seeing how serious you were, I took a few more nces at you.
Ming Sihan silently retracted his gaze, and the corners of his mouth curled up slightly.
His disciple was really good-looking. When would he let his disciple see his
intentions?
Master, do you know how to start a fire?
Yes, I know.
Therefore, MO Ruyue was relieved and handed the task of making the fire to Ming Sihan.
Ming Sihan didnt let her down. He had mastered the key to making a fire.
He would not make the kitchen a mess anymore.
He Xi was bored outside, so she came in to help.
It didnt take long for MO Ruyue to finish cooking a table full of delicious dishes.
With the help of two men, cooking was rtively easy. The fire was lit, and the vegetables were washed. The division ofbor was clear.
Ruyue, your culinary skills are really not bad. Why dont I take you in as my disciple? Ill teach you medical skills and youll cook for me.
He Xi ate the food. This was what it meant to be delicious.
What kind of dark cuisine was that in the canteen of the demon world?
Mo Ruyue nced at Ming Sihan and saw him staring at He Xi with murderous eyes.
She did not expect herself to be so popr.
Sigh, but I already have a master. MO Ruyue looked troubled.
She was not very interested in medicine.
He Xi, if you dare to steal from me, do you believe that I will pluck all your hair?
The words that were full of warning and threat sent chills down He Xis spine.
He was a crane. If his feathers were plucked out, it would be too humiliating.
Moreover, he believed that Ming Sihan was definitely someone who could do such a thing.
However, MO Ruyues words had a different meaning.
Strip the fur off his body?
She was thinking about the fur on it.
The demon actually had such a unique taste!
The Demon Lord of Emotions had a gay rtionship with He Xi?
No wonder He Xi had traveled thousands of miles to the Demon Realm to treat the Demon Lord when she heard that he was unwell.
He looked at Ming Sihan and then at He Xi.
These two people were both beautiful and quitepatible.
Alright, she had wanted to possess the Demon Venerable before because she thought that the Demon Venerable was alone.
Since the demon lord and the divine doctor had an affair, she would naturally fulfill their wish. She would rather destroy ten temples than break up a marriage.
If they couldnt get it, then they would be a couple!
After the meal, He Xi left, and MO Ruyue also prepared to rest.
In the afternoon, he continued practicing the Neb Sword Technique.
The Immortal Alliance Conference was imminent. She would lead the people of the Demon Realm to the Immortal Alliance Conference to cause trouble. She could not lose face for the Demon Venerable.
Therefore, he had to practice the Neb Sword Technique well. He would not be afraid even if he met a Jindan Stage opponent.
He could use the Divine Wrath, but if he used it frequently, he would be suspected.
Moreover, Ling Shoumo would also be present at the Immortal Alliance
Conference.
She didnt want to attract that mans attention.
It was night time. MO Ru ran back to her residence while Ming Sihan was meditating.
Sister, why didnt youe back for a day?
Li Zeyan hugged MO Ruyue and acted coquettishly in her arms.
MO Ruyue lowered her gaze and nced at Li Zeyan. Perhaps it was because the child was gradually growing up, but every time she saw Li Zeyan, she felt that there was a slight change.
In the past, she was thin and yellow, but now, she was fair and tender. Her facial features were bing more and more exquisite, and she looked like a little puppy.
If she grew up, wouldnt her looks be heaven-defying?
Sister is practicing her swordsmanship. What about you?
Of course, Zeyan listens to his sister the most.
Li Zeyan nodded..
Chapter 758 - 758: Extremely Complicated Poison
Chapter 758 - 758: Extremely Complicated Poison
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Zeyan, let go of your sister.
MO Ruyue looked at the boy who had already reached her shoulder and felt a little helpless. Should she teach Li Zeyan a lesson about the difference between men and women?
l dont want to.
Li Zeyan shook his head angrily.
His sister didnt let him hug her anymore. Was it because of the demon?
Be good, be obedient. Youre an adult now. You have to know that theres a difference between men and women. You cant just hug a girl casually, understand?
MO Ruyue said earnestly.
l only carry my sister, not other girls.
Sister is also a girl.
MO Ruyue wiped her forehead helplessly.
Its because of the demon lord that sister doesnt like Zeyan anymore, right?
This has nothing to do with the Demon Lord. You have to know that boys cant casually hug girls, understand?
But Zeyan just wants to hug Sister.
Not only did he want to hug his sister, but he also wanted to monopolize his sister.
Youve grown up. You have to control your emotions. Dont let them control you, understand?
Be the master of emotions.
Then, MO Ruyue pushed Li Zeyan away. This child had to be corrected.
Because she was busy with her career, she did not lecture Li Zeyan.
Li Zeyans face turned gloomy after being pushed away. His sister had pushed him away for another man
His sister was not like this in the past.
Li Zeyans hands were clenched into fists, and a red me mark appeared on his forehead.
He was an ancient demonic beast, the Fire Qilin. Everyone wanted him, but he already had a master.
Mo Ruyue was his original master.
The aura on his sister was definitely not wrong.
In this world, only his sister was worthy of him.
MO Ruyue decided to bring Li Zeyan to MO Chengfengs side and let MO Chengfeng help teach Li Zeyan well.
Zeyan, from now on, you will follow Senior Brother MO, understand?
Sister, I dont want to. Ill follow you.
When Li Zeyan heard that Mo Ruyue was going to send him to MO Chengfengs ce, he was instantly annoyed.
He wouldnt go to where MO Chengfeng was.
Even if he couldnt stay by Sister Ruyues side, he would stay alone.
But you will waste a lot of time.
MO Ruyue looked depressed. She didnt know how to deal with Li Zeyans matter.
Li Zeyan was no longer a child!
If it was in the folk, he should be getting married at this age.
No, it wont waste time at all.
He could afford to wait for a hundred years, so how could he not afford to wait for a mere ten and a half years?
Li Zeyans face was filled with determination.
He only wanted to follow Sister Ru Yue.
Seeing that Li Zeyan was in such a difficult position, Ruyue could only give up and said, I cant always be by your side Before she could finish, Li Zeyan interrupted her.
Sister, I can be fine alone.
No one could hurt him.
Her sister did not have to worry about her safety at all.
Alright then, Ill take Gui Gui away first. If you need anything, you can find me at the Demon Pce.
MO Ruyue did not continue to persuade him.
Since Li Zeyan wanted it, then so be it.
Let this guy do whatever he wants.
Im not going to the Demon Pce, I dont like Demon Venerable.
Li Zeyan muttered softly. He had a feeling that the man would snatch his sister away from him.
Her sister was living in the Demon Pce because of that man.
Li Zeyan felt depressed at the thought of this.
Li Zeyans expression became unfathomable as he watched MO Ruyues departing figure. The me mark on his forehead flickered.
On the way back, he met Jing Xichen. He was pale and cold sweat broke out on his forehead, as if he was trying his best to hold back something.
Jing Xichen walked toward the bamboo house.
MO Ruyue hesitated for a moment as she looked at his back. Then, she quickly followed him.
She had been to Jing Xichens ce before. The conditions there were not bad, but danger lurked everywhere. If she was not careful, she might lose her life.
Senior Brother?
MO Ruyue stood outside and called out in a low voice. She did not dare to go in.
He was worried that he would be bitten by poisonous creatures.
In this dark ce, he might be dead if he was bitten by something.
Lights were burning inside the bamboo house.
There was no sound at all. Worried that something might have happened to Jing Xichen, MO Ruyue finally mustered her courage and entered the bamboo house.
As soon as she opened the door, she saw a figure lying on the ground.
Senior Brother.
MO Ruyue quickly squatted down and pushed Jing Xichen away.
Was Jing Xichen poisoned?
Jing Xichens face turned green, and the meridians in his body turned purple.
His breathing seemed to have be rapid.
This was definitely a sign of poisoning.
At this moment, Jing Xichen had no reaction.
MO Ruyue strenuously helped him up and onto the bed.
Gui Gui, you stay here and look after your senior brother. Ill go find Miracle Doctor He Xi.!
Squeak
Gui Gui nodded, seemingly understanding what he meant. His round eyes looked at the man lying on the bed.
MO Ruyue did not dare to dy and hurried to the Devil Pce to find He Xis residence.
Godly doctor, save me!
She broke through the door and ran straight to the bed, then dragged the divine doctor He Xi up.
He Xi was confused.
Whats wrong? Is your master dying?
Wasnt it a little too much to wake him up in the middle of the night?
Ming Sihan wouldnt die.
He Xi yawned and stretched.
Its not that my master cant do it, but that my senior brother cant do it.
After saying that, MO Ruyue carried He Xi and walked out.
Strangely enough, why was He Xi so light?
But MO Ruyue couldnt care less about this at the moment. She quickly carried the man to save Jing Xichen.
When they arrived at the bamboo house, Second Senior Brother Baili Xi was inside.
Senior Brother Baili.
MO Ruyue called out. Baili Xis expression turned grave.
When the mountain ghost saw MO Ruyue enter, it quickly jumped onto MO Ruyues shoulder.
Junior Sister, youre here.
Baili Xijian pursed his lips and nced at Jing Xichen before continuing,Junior Brothers condition isnt very good. Ive already invited the divine doctor He Xi over. MO Ruyue hurriedly pulled He Xi into the room.
Miracle Doctor, please.
Seeing this, Bai Lixi also hurriedly made space for He Xi.
He Xi walked over to Jing Xichen, took a look, and then immediately gave Jing
Xichen acupuncture.
Gudu? Who had a deep grudge against him? Its actually Gudu.
He Xi revealed an expression of disbelief.
Godly doctor, whats an Ancient Crossing?
MO Ruyue asked curiously.
Gudu is an extremelyplicated poison. This poison can only be absorbed into the body bit by bit during infancy. After about a month, it will act up at a certain time. When it acts up, it will make people want to die.
This kind of poison was only effective during infancy.
Generally speaking, there were not many people who were poisoned by this kind of poison. After all, who wouldy their hands on an innocent baby?
Even if there was a grudge, wouldnt it be better to directly poison him to death?
Then cant this poison be cured?
MO Ruyue looked at the man lying on the bed with a grave expression. There was aplicated look in her eyes.
Could this poison be rted to Jing Xichens family?
She remembered that Jing Xichen had an older brother, and they were twins.
He Xi sat down on a chair next to her and looked at some of the utensils used to develop medicine in the room. She was a little interested in Jing Xichen.
In this world, there shouldnt be anyone who can cure Gudus poison. Of course, other than me.
There was a smile on his face, and the corners of his mouth curled up slightly. He was extremely proud.
Mo Ruyue heard this and hurriedly said,Then, Godly Doctor, can you save
Senior Martial Brother? Miracle Doctor, please.
Bai Lixi hurriedly pleaded..
Chapter 759 - 759: The Monkey King
Chapter 759 - 759: The Monkey King
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Its not impossible to save people. After all, Im a benevolent doctor. However, Guducks a medicinal catalyst. I dont have that medicinal catalyst with me. Only Monkey Mountain has it. If one of you goes to retrieve the medicinal catalyst, I can save him.
He Xis gaze wandered between Baili Xijian and MO Ruyue, and he had an expression that said that he could only help them this much.
Next, it would depend on who was willing to go to Monkey Mountain to find the medicinal catalyst.
MO Ruyue nced at Jing Xichen and said without hesitation, Ill go.
Ill go.
Bai Lixi did not hesitate.
He and MO Ruyue spoke almost at the same time.
The two of them looked at each other, their eyes filled with certainty.
Godly doctor, tell me, what kind of medicinal primer do you want to get from Monkey Mountain?
MO Ruyue asked.
Anyway, there were still some days before the Immortal Alliance Conference. It was not toote to go to Monkey Mountain now.
Bai Lixi also looked at He Xi closely.
He was waiting for Miracle Doctor He Xis words.
He Xi got up and walked to the window, looking at the Monkey Mountain in the distance.
Monkey Mountain wasnt too far from here, but the medicinal primer might be a little difficult to obtain.
He hesitated for a moment, then said to MO Ruyue and Baili Xijian,The medicinal catalyst is the Monkey Kings papa.
What? You want to feed my senior brother with monkey poop?
Mo Ruyues eyes widened. This was a little too ridiculous.
The Monkey King Papa of the Monkey Mountain had never heard of such a strange medicinal catalyst.
He thought that he needed someones heart blood or something.
He Xi secretly wiped the sweat from his forehead and said, The drug primer is not necessarily for eating. In short, if I want to save him, I need the Monkey Kings father.
Alright, you wait here. Senior Brother Baili and I will set off to the Monkey Mountain to look for the Monkey Kings father.
Speaking of the word papa, MO Ruyue couldnt help butment that she hadnt eaten. Otherwise, she would have vomited the food she had eaten.
He Xi nodded. Then you should go ande back as soon as possible. Otherwise, he will suffer even more in the future.
Alright.
MO Ruyue and Baili Xi saw that the two of them had set off for Monkey Mountain overnight.
The two of them rode their horses and arrived at Monkey Mountain the next morning.
Ming Sihan opened his eyes and found that MO Ruyue was no longer in the demon world.
Where did my disciple go?
Ming Sihan couldnt help but ask as he looked at He Xis figure.
He Xi squatted down, nced at Ming Sihan and said, Ruyue went to Monkey
Mountain.
Why are you going to Monkey Mountain?
Ming Sihan frowned slightly. He wasnt happy that he didnt see Ruyue in the
morning.
Why didnt Ruyue greet him?
Looking in the direction of the Monkey Mountain, Ming Sihans brows couldnt rx.
One of your subordinates was poisoned, and your disciple went to Monkey
Mountain to get the medicinal primer.
Who was poisoned?
Ming Sihan couldnt help but ask Ruyue seemed to be getting along quite well with her senior brothers.
This made him a little unhappy.
How could Ruyue be so close to those men? I think hes called something called Jingxi Chen.
Him.
Ming Sihan understood and had an idea in his heart.
Looks like you already know. Yes.
Then why didnt you save him?
He didnt ask me to save him. Besides, I dont know medicine. Ming Sihan said gloomily.
He had thought that Jing Xichen was just having a minor problem.
Dont you know me?
l usually ignore you, so I didnt think of this.
You
He Xi was rendered speechless by Ming Sihans coldness. This man was really too infuriating.
Who was it?
Ming Sihan returned to the courtyard. In order to calm himself down, he prepared to write.
Monkey Mountain
MO Ruyue and Baili Xi saw the two of them walking in the Monkey Mountain, which was filled with monkeys and grandchildren. He could only hear the sounds of monkeys.
Oh ah ah ah ah ah ah
It rang here and there.
This mountain is filled with monkeys. Which one is the real monkey king?
MO Ruyue looked troubled.
Baili Xi was silent because he didnt know which one was the Monkey King.
Looking at MO Ruyue panting, Baili Xi couldnt help but say,Junior sister, sit here and rest. Let senior brother go look for her.
Im fine. I can still hold on.
MO Ruyue shook her head.
Seeing MO Ruyues insistence, Baili Xi couldnt help but nce at her.
Sister Ruyue was much better than Sister Yun Yan. Sister Yun Yan seemed to be more delicate.
Although many people liked delicate girls, he preferred strong girls like Junior Sister Ruyue.
Then lets continue walking. Well definitely meet the Monkey King. Yes.
MO Ruyue responded and continued to walk forward. For now, she should speak less and conserve her strength to climb up.
Monkey Mountain was harder to climb than Bird Poop Mountain.
asionally, she would step on Monkeys poop.
It was a pity that none of the poop belonged to the Monkey King.
They walked to a canyon. There was a path here, so they didnt have to work so hard.
Oh Ahhhhh
MO Ruyue mimicked a monkeys cry, and her voice resounded throughout the entire canyon.
Then, they heard the group of monkeys respond. Countless monkeys jumped over.
The monkey seemed to treat MO Ruyue as one of its kind.
When he came over to take a look, he realized that it was not his kind.
Junior Sister, how did you attract so many monkeys? Baili Xi was stunned when he saw the monkeys around him.
Countless monkeys poked their heads at them.
Mo Ruyue was also a little embarrassed. I was just imitating the monkeys call. Do they think Im here to look for my rtives? she said.
There were so many monkeys, and it was unknown which one was the Monkey King. Perhaps the Monkey King was not here at all.
The two men continued to walk forward. Their every move was watched by the monkey.
Sun Wukong, the Great Sage Equal to Heaven
MO Ruyue shouted.
Seeing that there was doubt. Baili Xi asked curiously,Junior Sister. who is
Sun Wukong and the Great Sage, Heavens Equal?
Monkey King?
MO Ruyue replied seriously.
Monkey King.
Bai Lixi felt that these titles were rather interesting.
Uma Wen.
MO Ruyue shouted in the mountains, hoping to attract more monkeys attention.
It was a little difficult to take the initiative to look for the Monkey King. It might save time if the Monkey King came to look for him.
Her voice had indeed attracted many monkeys over. Those monkeys were jumping up and down, very active.
Because there was a mountain ghost on MO Ruyues shoulder, the monkeys did not dare to approach her.
Senior Brother, observe carefully. Pay more attention to therger and stronger young monkeys. Those monkeys are very likely to be Monkey Kings.
Alright.
Baili Xi seemed to understand MO Ruyues actions. His sharp eyes searched for the Monkey King among the monkeys.
MO Ruyue created amotion to attract the monkeys, but there were still a lot of monkeys who were not attracted. If only there were some bananas.
Banana?
Baili Xijian looked at MO Ruyue in confusion.
Junior Sister seemed to have thought of something.
It had to be said that the thoughts in her junior sisters mind were not ordinary, and her thoughts were very active.
Is this it?
Baili Xi took out a round of bananas from his interspatial ring.
Senior Brother, why would you put a banana banana in your Interspatial Ring? MO Ruyue asked with widened eyes.
This senior brother was quite interesting.
Baili Xi blushed. He didnt want to admit that he liked bananas.
l identally put it in.
He avoided her gaze, not daring to look at MO Ruyue..
Chapter 760 - 760: Fresh Daddy
Chapter 760 - 760: Fresh Daddy
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue didnt care. It was great to have bananas.
This was Monkeys favorite.
Banana could attract more monkeys.
When the monkeys saw the banana in MO Ruyues arms, they started to be restless.
All of them stared at the yellow banana, eager to try it.
Mo Ruyue threw a banana out, and the monkeys started fighting over it.
Instantly, the scene was in chaos.
Brave monkeys dared to approach humans, but they were very afraid of mountain ghosts, so they did not dare to act rashly.
He could only stare at the banana in MO Ruyues hand from afar.
MO Ruyue looked around the group of monkeys, but she did not see the Monkey King.
She helplessly sat on the rock beside her.
Junior Sister, look, theres a very strong monkey over there. Could that monkey be the monkey king were looking for?
Baili Xi couldnt help but ask when he saw the strong monkey.
He wasntpletely sure that the monkey he was controlling was the Monkey King.
MO Ruyue stood up and looked in the direction Baili Xijian was pointing.
She casually picked up a few bananas and threw them at the monkeys.
If that monkey is the Monkey King, then the monkeys next to it definitely wont dare to snatch its things.
MO Ruyue exined simply.
His gaze was fixed on the strong monkey.
He hoped that he could find the Monkey King as soon as possible and get some of the Monkey Kings poop to bring back.
Senior Brother was still waiting for Monkeys father.
The other monkeys beside him did not dare to pick up the bananas.
A monkey that was not afraid of death went to pick up a banana, but it was quickly intimidated by the strong monkey next to it. Its pretty close. That monkey should be the Monkey King.
MO Ruyues eyes lit up. The Monkey King was finally here.
The Monkey King did not know that he was being watched. He picked up the banana on the ground and climbed up the tree in a few steps. He sat on the tree and peeled the banana to eat.
It looks like the Monkey King is very vignt.
Yes, I think we can bring the monkey back first and feed it more. The monkey will poop eventually.
Mo Ruyue suggested.
Hence, the two of them hit it off and went to catch the Monkey King together.
The Monkey King wasnt a free man. When it saw that someone wasing to catch it, it quickly fled.
It was extremely agile and could move freely through the forest.
As there was a big tree blocking their way, it was inconvenient for MO Ruyue and Baili Xi to move around.
Helpless, MO Ruyue said to Hillghost, Ghostly, help me catch that monkey king.
He remembered that Hillghost was also very fast. It should be easy for it to keep up with Monkeys pace, right?
MO Ruyue ced all her hopes on Hillghost.
The hillghost squeaked and jumped onto a branch, disappearing from MO Ruyues sight.
Catching a monkey, wasnt that simple?
In the forest, its speed was the fastest.
Is that little animal a mountain ghost?
Baili Xi couldnt help but ask when he saw Hillghost run away.
He had noticed it before, but he didnt ask.
Thats right. MO Ruyue smiled and said, Eldest Senior Brother and I went to look for the Heaven-cleaving Sword. We met it on the way.
l saw that Mountain Ghost was fated with me, so I kept it by my side.
Hillghost was actually a little foodie.
Because of a few fish, she was targeted by the mountain ghost.
I see.
Baili Xijian stared at MO Ruyues side profile. He spent most of his time outside. He would only return to the Devil World on the eve of the assessment, or if there was something important in the Devil World.
The rtionship between Junior Sister and her fellow disciples seemed to be quite good.
During the time I wasnt in the Devil Realm, 1 seemed to have missed out on a lot of interesting things.
Bai Lixi saw a trace of regret in her gentle voice.
He was the only one who rarely spent time with Junior Sister Ruyue.
Isnt the Demon Realm just like that? Theres nothing interesting there. Its very boring.
MO Ruyue replied casually.
The two of them walked one after the other while observing the Monkey King and Hillghosts voices.
Perhaps it was because of the mountain ghosts pursuit, the monkeys all over the mountain let out a cry.
Some of the monkeys even attacked MO Ruyue and Baili Xijian. They picked up rocks and threw them at them.
Baili Xijian and MO Ruyue kept dodging.
It seems that we have angered these monkeys.
Baili Xijian pursed his cherry blossom pale pink lips and dodged the stone with his agile body.
He had fought with humans before, but he had never fought with animals.
What a bunch of monkeys.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but say.
He could only hope that Hillghost could catch up to the Monkey King as soon as possible.
After blocking for a while, Hillghost finally appeared.
However, the mountain ghost in front of him was much bigger than the mountain ghost that had left before. It had the Monkey King in its mouth.
When the other monkeys saw the mountain ghost return, they quickly retreated, as if they were afraid that the mountain ghost would eat them.
Mo Ruyue raised her eyebrows slightly. She was not surprised by this scene. She had long known that mountain ghosts could grow at will.
When Baili Xi saw this, he revealed a look of disbelief.
It was unbelievable that a mountain ghost could be so big.
Then, Hillghost spat out the Monkey King.
Its body also instantly shrank a lot.
MO Ruyue looked at the Monkey King and the corner of her mouth twitched.Could the Monkey King have died?
Squeak
Hillghost shook his head, indicating that the Monkey King wasnt dead. He was just exhausted.
After all, the Monkey Kings physical strength was not even a third of its own.
Seeing that the Monkey King was still breathing, Baili Xi said, The Monkey King isnt dead, but what should we do about the Monkey Kings father?
At this moment, the Monkey King seemed to be unable to poop, right?
This was a thorny problem.
Well talk about it when we get back. Theres more food for the Monkey King on the road.
MO Ruyue thought about it. The sky was getting darker. What if the Monkey King ran away?
Moreover, when he brought Monkey back, the poop that had juste out was hot and fresh.
Dont things have to be hot?
Thats the only way.
Baili Xijian nodded in agreement with MO Ruyues suggestion.
Then, the two of them left the Monkey Mountain with the Monkey King.
It was already noon the next day when they returned to the Demon Realm.
On the way, Monkey ate a lot of food, but there were no signs of pooping.
He could only bring the Monkey King to where Jing Xichen lived.
Miracle Doctor, we brought the Monkey King back.
MO Ruyue came in from outside and ced the cage in the room with Baili Xi.
At this moment, the Monkey King looked depressed.
He had been the monkey king of Monkey Mountain, but in the end, he had been brought here by these inexplicable people.
When it returned, its position might be reced by other monkeys.
If I were the Monkey Kings father.
Godly Doctor He Xi nced at Monkey. Didnt he say that he wanted Monkey Kings father?
Why did you bring back all the monkeys?
Godly doctor, its too difficult to find Monkey Kings poop. Its better to wait for Monkey King to poop fresh poop. Its still warm after pooping.
MO Ruyue said seriously.
The corner of He Xis mouth twitched. Its not for eating. It doesnt matter whether its cold, hot, dry, or hard.
He walked over to Monkey and took out a jelly bean and handed it to Monkey.
Monkey nced at He Xi and stuffed the jelly bean into his mouth.
Not long after, Monkey began to poop.
Seeing MO Ruyue and Baili Xijian watching from the side, He Xi said,You two go outside. Im going to save someone.
Oh, okay. Thank you for your hard work, Miracle Doctor.
Mo Ruyue responded and left the small bamboo house with a peace of mind..
Chapter 761 - 761: What’s the harm in letting her stay over there
Chapter 761 - 761: Whats the harm in letting her stay over there
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue and Baili Xi left the small bamboo house. The sunlight outside was just nice, and it brought warmth to their bodies.
After two nights of not having a good rest, Baili Xi noticed that MO Ruyue looked a little haggard and said, Junior Sister, go back and rest early.
En, Ill go to the Demon Lord first to inform him. Senior brother, you should also go and rest.
MO Ruyue replied. They had been dyed for two days, so she had to inform the Demon Commander.
She didnt want the demon to think that she was cking off.
After saying that, MO Ruyue turned around and left.
Baili Xi looked at the departing figure and could not help but fall into deep thought.
Junior Sister Ruyue was interesting and intelligent.
It was all thanks to Junior Sister Ruyue that they managed to capture the Monkey King.
In the past, he did not have any deep interactions with his junior sister. Now, he could not help but want to get close to her.
Some people had a magical power that made people want to get close to them.
MO Ruyue carefully went into the Demon Pce and let Hillghost y by himself while she went to look for the Demon Venerable.
At a nce, he saw the demon sitting in front of the table, holding a brush in his hand, as if he was writing something.
Ming Sihan raised his eyes slightly. His dark red eyes looked at MO Ruyues figure and he calmly put down the brush in his hand.
Master.
MO Ruyue called out weakly as she rolled her eyes.
Ming Sihan stared at MO Ru Yue and didnt say anything.
This woman finally remembered that he was a virgin?
In his heart, was his senior brother more important or was his master more important?
Master, Ive been busy with senior brothers matters for the past two days.
Senior brother has been poisoned. Its very serious
MO Ruyue exined and walked closer to Ming Sihan, worried that he would get angry.
Ming Sihan looked at MO Ruyue and said,I know.
Then Master, you wont be angry, right?
MO Ruyue asked.
l am indeed very angry.
Master, Im sorry. Next time, Ill definitely remember to inform you first.
Ming Sihan felt much better when he saw MO Ruyues sincere attitude of admitting her mistake.
This made him quite satisfied.
Im hungry.
Alright, Ill cook for you immediately.
MO Ruyue heaved a sigh of relief when she saw that Ming Sihan wasnt angry.
Otherwise, she really didnt know how to coax her master.
His gaze inadvertentlynded on the Xuan paper on the table. There was a line of words written on it. Master, what did you write? she asked casually.
Read it yourself.
Ming Sihan pursed his lips and his eyes sparkled.
Since Ruyue had read it out loud, she should have understood his intentions, right?
Mo Ruyue took a nce and read, The mountains and rivers are vast, the human world is full of stars. There is no one who is not you.
Ming Sihan looked at MO Ruyue expectantly. Ruyue should know what he was thinking, right?
MO Ruyue smiled. Master, I didnt expect
Didnt think of what? Ming Sihans voice sounded anxious and nervous.
Ruyue should know what he meant, right?
l didnt expect Master to be so talented.
MO Ruyue praised and gave Ming Sihan a thumbs up.
Her smile was pure and sincere.
Ming Sihans handsome face stiffened slightly and he said,Other than that?
Couldnt he tell the meaning behind his words?
He missed her.
Was there anything else?
MO Ruyue took a closer look, not knowing how topliment him.Masters handwriting is naturally not bad. How else could she praise him?
She could not think of anything else.
Ming Sihans face darkened. Go and cook.
It was simply like talking to a cow. He didnt even understand this.
Damn woman!
MO Ruyue saw that Ming Sihans expression seemed a little off. She shrugged helplessly, not knowing what was going on.
Why was she angry again?
A mans heart is like a needle at the bottom of the sea!
MO Ruyue went to cook a simple meal of three dishes and one soup.
She was also hungry, so she ate so that she could sleep.
Master, its time to eat.
After the meal was ready, MO Ruyue quickly called Ming Sihan to eat.
In fact, Ming Sihans appetite was very small, not even as big as a girls.
This man had almost tasted it before stopping.
Almost all the food was eaten by her and Hillghost.
It was normal for Ming Sihan to eat less. This guy had a high cultivation level.
The higher the cultivation, the smaller the appetite.
They could even live well without eating.
Seeing how MO Ruyue enjoyed her meal, Ming Sihan thought to himself,This woman is really heartless. Master, is that all you have? Im not eating. I have no appetite.
Ming Sihan stood up and left.
MO Ruyue looked at Ming Sihans back and mumbled,The Demon Lord today IS so strange.
Forget it. Eating is more important.
Ghostly, eat more. Its all thanks to you that we caught the Monkey King this time.
As she spoke, MO Ruyue picked up a big chicken leg for Hillghost.
Ever since she raised the mountain ghost, she no longer had to worry about leftovers.
Hillghosts stomach could hold many things.
Xuanling immortal sect
Lan Qis face was gloomy as he cursed,Damned MO Ruyue, its been so long and there hasnt been any news from her.
The Heaven-cleaving Sword was now in the hands of the Demonic Realm
Saintess. He wanted to take it out through MO Ruyue.
However, he could not contact MO Ruyue at all.
That woman seemed to have disappeared.
Eldest Senior Brother, Master is looking for you.
Chen Yuluo came to Lan Qis room and said softly.
In fact, she wanted to attract the attention of her senior brother the most, but it seemed that he did not have any feelings for her.
Ill be right there. Lan Qi straightened his expression and said. He didnt know why his master was looking for him at this time.
Without looking at Chen Yuluo, Lan Qi walked out.
Soon, they arrived at the Seven Stars Hall.
Master, you were looking for me?
Lan Qi cupped his hands respectfully at Ling Shoumo.
l suddenly remembered that one of our disciples went to the Demon Realm as a spy.
Ling Shoumo asked in confusion. He had already forgotten the disciples name. He seemed to be wearing a mask.
Hearing Ling Shoumos words, ayer of cold sweat broke out on Lan Qis forehead. He replied in a low voice, Yes.
Why isnt he back yet?
This
Lan Qi didnt know how to answer. His mind was spinning rapidly. He had to find an excuse.
They had agreed to be undercover for three months, but he saw that MO Ruyue was doing a good job and he didnt like her. In addition, his master was in seclusion, so he made MO Ruyue stay in the Devil World.
Staying in Xuanling Immortal Sect was too detestable.
Her strength was low and she was ugly. In the Mystic Spirit Immortal Sect, she simply dragged down their average appearance.
Since the Demon Realm didnt mind, then let her stay in the Demon Realm.
Whats wrong?
Ling Shoumo frowned slightly and stammered. Was he hiding something?
Shizun, I think MO Ruyue is doing quite well in the Devil World. Why not let her stay there? When we thoroughly understand the Devil World, it will be easier to annihte the Devil World in one fell swoop, right?
Lan Qi said carefully. He did not dare to say that he could not contact MO Ruyue.
Ling Shoumo couldnt remember what MO Ruyue looked like. After all, that woman always wore a mask and her aptitude was average. She wouldnt attract his attention.
He only knew that the woman had suddenly volunteered to go to the Demon
Realm as a spy.
But that seemed to be a few years ago.
He had only been undercover for three months. In the blink of an eye, three years had passed.
He did not expect that woman to still be in the Demon Realm..
Chapter 762 - 762: Nourishing Chicken Soup
Chapter 762 - 762: Nourishing Chicken Soup
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The Immortal Alliance Conference ising soon. Its time for her toe back.
Ling Shoumo said in a low voice. The people of the immortal sect should not stay in the Demon Realm for long, lest they have disloyalty.
His expression was indifferent. In his heart, MO Ruyue was just a small disciple.
Therefore, he was not nervous about MO Ruyue.
However, it was time for MO Ru to return to Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Lan Qi did not dare to say that he could not contact MO Ruyue, so he could only brace himself and agree, Yes, this disciple will send a message to junior sister immediately. Yes, you may leave.
Yes.
Lan Qi left the Seven Stars Hall with an ugly expression. He ced his hands behind his back and thought of a solution.
He couldnt contact MO Ruyue at all. If he went to the Devil World rashly, he would definitely be captured and cut into pieces by the people of the Devil World.
The security of the Devil Realm was tight, and the people of the Immortal Sect could not enter at all.
If they were discovered, they would definitely not be able toe out alive.
DamDamned MO Ruyue, what exactly are you doing in the Devil Realm?
Lan Qi cursed silently.
Could it be that he had already betrayed them?
Impossible, absolutely impossible. Xuanling Immortal Sect was the dream of many people. MO Ruyue would never give up Xuanling Immortal Sect for the sake of the Demon Realm.
Devil World
MO Ruyue was practicing the Neb Sword Technique in preparation for the Immortal Alliance Conference.
Actually, she was confident that she could defeat all the disciples in the arena.
The most powerful disciples in the Immortal Alliance Conference were only at the foundation establishment stage. Those at the jindan stage were usually elders or sect masters.
The elders and the sect leader would not participate in thepetition. At most, they would watch the disciples performance from the side.
Therefore, she could instantly kill those foundation establishment immortal cultivation disciples.
Focus, why are you always distracted?
A voice rang in her ear and MO Ruyue immediately came back to her senses.
She paused for a moment and nced at Ming Sihan. She whispered,Master, how did you know that I was absent-minded?
Your eyes are empty. If youre not daydreaming, what are you doing?
Ming Sihan was tall and slender, and his silver-white hair was like silk. The breeze caressed his hair, making him look slightly elegant.
He held a small jar of wine in his hand and asionally took a few sips.
Her fair skin had a faint pink tinge to it, making her look very delicate.
This man was too good-looking.
Mo Ruyue looked away. She seemed to be a little lustful towards Ming Sihan.
He had the heart of a thief but not the guts.
This damned beast desire!
Master, I understand. I was just distracted for a while.
MO Ruyue exined awkwardly.
MO Ruyue felt a little tired after practicing her swordsmanship every day. She nced at Ming Sihan but didnt dare toin.
After she finished practicing her swordsmanship, MO Ruyue stewed some ginseng chicken soup and prepared to bring it to Jing Xichen to nourish his body.
Master, this is the chicken soup that you left behind. Drink it while its hot.
Its very nutritious.
Of course, if Jing Xichen had it, the Demon Venerable had it too.
Otherwise, the demon would be jealous.
Therefore, in order to prevent the demon lord from getting jealous, MO Ruyue would always give Ming Sihan an extra portion of food every time she brought food for her senior brother.
Im so filial. There shouldnt be any good disciples like me anymore, right? MO Ruyue couldnt help but sigh.
Ming Sihan nced at MO Ruyue and watched her leave the Demon Pce.
There was a bowl of steaming chicken soup on the table.
Such a big pot, and he only left him such a small bowl?
Ming Sihan was angry, but he still drank the bowl of chicken soup that MO Ruyue left behind.
At this moment, He Xi came in from outside and saw Ming Sihan drinking something with a casual smile on his face.
Are you drinking? Is it good?
Seeing Ming Sihan drinking chicken soup, He Xis eyes showed a trace of envy.
Ming Sihan didnt finish the chicken soup and ced it on the table.
Its alright. What are you doing here?
The taste was indeed very good. After all, it was made by Ruyue herself and was very delicious.
He Xi smiled and said,Give me some too.
As she spoke, she picked up the bowl without any exnation, not minding that Ming Sihan had drunk it.
However, Ming Sihans expression darkened and he frowned. This is my soup.
Whats wrong with me drinking a little?
No.
I have it in my hand. Its not up to you.
Thats chicken soup!
Ming Sihan rolled his eyes at He Xi. This guy was really annoying. Whatever he drank, this guy would drink!
How shameless.
If he had the ability, he would also find a disciple who was good at cooking.
Chicken soup?
Hearing this, He Xis face turned cold and he didnt continue drinking.
He didnt like to drink chicken soup or eat chicken.
He didnt eat any birds, chickens, or ducks. He always felt that eating those birds was eating his own kind. Yeah, why arent you drinking anymore?
l think its better to give it to you.
As he spoke, He Xi put down the chicken soup in her hand, feeling a little disgusted.
He thought it was some other soup.
MO Ruyue went to Jing Xichens room. The Monkey King in Jing Xichens room had already been released back to Monkey Mountain.
As soon as he pushed open the door, he saw Baili Xijian and Jing Xichen inside.
MO Ruyue stood at the door and coughed lightly.Did Ie at the right time?
She saw Baili Xijian sitting at the head of the bed, holding Jing Xichens hand.
Jing Xichen leaned against the bed weakly.
Two figures, one blue and one red.
MO Ruyue felt that she hade at the wrong time.
The door had already been pushed open. It would be a little inappropriate to go out again.
Junior Sister, its not what you think.
Jing Xichen quickly exined and pulled his hand back from Baili Xijians.
He looked as if he was trying to avoid arousing suspicion.
Seeing this, Baili Xi also hurriedly stood up and said,Im bandaging Shidis wound. Shimei, dont misunderstand.
There was nothing between him and Jing Xichen.
Mo Ruyue coughed lightly, not quite believing their words.
Actually, its fine if you guys have anything.
Anyway, she didnt mind.
The two senior brothers were both dragons and phoenixes, and they were verypatible.
Jing Xichen and Baili Xijian looked at each other helplessly.
Junior Sister, dont randomly choose a couple. Junior Sister, thank you so much.
Jing Xichens face was filled with gratitude.
If it wasnt for his junior sister, perhaps he would have to suffer that bone-corroding pain in the future.
Of course, he still had to thank Senior Brother Baili.
In short, he had to thank the person who saved him.
No need to thank me. Im relieved that youre fine, Senior Brother.
MO Ruyue smiled. Shixiong wasnt in a very good state right now, but He Xi said that he would be fine after a good rest.
During this period of time, it had been the senior and junior brothers who took turns to take care of Jing Xichen.
Senior brother, this is the nourishing chicken soup I specially made for you. Its good for your body.
MO Ruyue brought out the chicken soup she had brought over with a smile on her face.
Jing Xichen looked at the chicken soup and was very touched.
When he was at his worst, it was his senior brothers and junior sisters who took care of him.
The emotions in his heart couldnt be described with words.
Junior Sister, sorry to trouble you.
Its no trouble. Your body needs nourishment. Eat more.
People were all mutual. Jing Xichen had helped herplete her task, so she naturally had to repay him.
Seeing MO Ruyues chicken soup, Baili Xi couldnt help but tease,l really envy Shidi for having chicken soup to drink.
Junior Sister Ruyue was getting more and more impressive..
Chapter 763 - 763: I Won’t Lie
Chapter 763 - 763: I Wont Lie
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Upon hearing Baili Xijians words, MO Ruyue smiled and said, Theres no need to be envious. Everyone has a share of the gains and losses. Its just that Senior Brother Jings chicken soup has more meat.
As she spoke, MO Ruyue took out a bowl of chicken soup from the bottom of the food box.
He had to treat his senior brothers equally.
Me too?
Baili Xi was ttered. He didnt expect that he would get a share of the chicken soup.
Of course, drink it while its hot.
MO Ruyue took it out and continued,Send the rest to the other Senior Brothers.
Jing Xichen and Baili Xijian watched MO Ruyue leave.
The two of them drank the chicken soup silently. The bowl of chicken soup was sweet and delicious, without too much grease.
Junior Sisters craftsmanship is really not bad. When Baili Xi heard thispliment, he felt his entire heart be warm.
Its always been a good thing to be an evil spirit. Jing Xichens eyes were gentle and filled with affirmation for MO Ruyue.
Mo Ruyue brought the chicken soup to MO Chengfengs room.
Senior Brother, are you there?
Junior Sister, why are you looking for me?
Seeing MO Ruyuee over, MO Chengfeng was very happy.
During this period of time, Ruyue had been practicing her swordsmanship in the Demon Pce and he rarely saw her.
Im here to bring you chicken soup.
Chicken soup.
Yes, drink it while its hot. 1 still have to go to the other senior brothers ce, so I wont dy any longer, lest the chicken soup gets cold.
After she finished speaking, MO Ruyue ced the soup on the table and hurriedly left.
MO Chengfeng opened his mouth, wanting to say something, but hesitated. He could only watch MO Ruyues back as she left.
Junior Sister came and went in a hurry, like a gust of wind.
It seemed that he could not express his feelings again.
MO Chengfeng felt slightly bitter in his heart.
MO Ruyue came to Ye Yunfengs ce, Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin lived together.
When she saw the man in the courtyard, MO Ruyue shouted,Senior Brother
Jun Lin?
l am Bamboo Wind.
Ye Yunfeng replied helplessly. Ruyue actually couldnt tell him from Ye Junlin.
It was a little heartbreaking.
Cough cough, Senior Brother, wheres Senior Brother Jun Lin?
MO Ruyue coughed lightly, feeling extremely apologetic in her heart. Who asked the two of them to look so alike? They wore the same clothes, and even had the same hairstyle.
Its hard to tell, okay?
He went out and should be back soon.
Ye Yunfeng had just finished speaking when Ye Junlin descended from the sky.
Im back. Is Junior Sister Ruyue here to look for me?
Ye Junlin slightly raised his eyebrows and stared at MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue took out two bowls of chicken soup from the lunchbox and said,Its for your bodies.
Ye Junlin and Ye Yunfeng looked at each other.
Drink it while its hot. Ive boiled it for several hours, and its all essence. MO Ruyue urged.
l still have to find the other senior brothers. I wont disturb you anymore. Please enjoy.
After she finished speaking, she left in a hurry, leaving the Ye brothers behind.
Ye Junlin stared at the figure and the corners of his mouth curled up slightly.
Junior Sister Ruyue is really thoughtful.
At this time, Ye Yunfeng had already picked up the chicken soup and started to gulp it down.
In just a few gulps, he finished the delicious chicken soup.
After drinking it, she still wanted more. She reached out for Ye Junlins bowl of chicken soup.
Ye Junlin took a closer look and quickly brought the chicken soup over to protect it.
What was this guy trying to do?
Dont think that just because youre my brother, Ill give in to you.
Ye Junlin muttered unhappily.
Ye Yunfeng curled his lips and said leisurely,l thought you didnt like chicken soup.
Who said I dont like it? I like it very much!
Ye Junlin snorted and slowly tasted the chicken soup.
This was made by Junior Sister Ruyue, so she naturally had to taste it.
He wouldnt drink it like Ye Yun Feng.
Good things should be tasted slowly.
MO Ruyue then sent them to Xia Zhixing and Qi Shaoyu.
As for Shen Yunyan, she was not going to send her off.
She had a grudge with Shen Yunyan, and Shen Yunyan was not kind to her. She was not so generous as to give her chicken soup.
If he gave it to Shen Yunyan, she might not appreciate it.
Why did she have to be so unhappy?
Finally, she returned to her original residence.
Big sister.
Before MO Ruyue could open the door, she heard Li Zeyans excited voice.
The door to the courtyard was quickly opened, and Li Zeyan appeared in his line of sight.
Your nose is really sharp. I havent even knocked on the door, and you already know its me?
Zeyan will never forget the aura on my sister.
Li Zeyan said weakly. Even if it was a hundred or a thousand years, he would never forget the aura on his sister.
It was because of his sisters aura that he was able to find her. MO Ruyue thought that Li Zeyan was just joking and exaggerating.
Sister, are youing back to sleep tonight?
Li Zeyan stared at MO Ruyue, his eyes full of expectation.
Seeing Li Zeyans expression, MO Ruyues heart softened.Okay,e back and sleep tonight.
Wait, why did it feel like she was cheating?
She was apanying the Demon Lord on the surface, but she had secretly snuck out to apany Li Zeyan at night?
Wasnt she a little too much of a scumbag?
By the way, I brought you some chicken soup. Why dont you try it?
MO Ruyue left thest bowl of chicken soup for Li Zeyan.
Li Zeyans eyes lit up when he heard that.
Sister, youre so good to me.
Li Zeyan was overjoyed. He then asked, Is this chicken soup specially made for me?
Uh, Senior Brother and Master both have it. This is yourst bowl of chicken soup.
MO Ruyue exined awkwardly.
She had eaten most of the chicken soup.
Is this myst bowl of chicken soup?
Li Zeyans expression gradually became dejected.
l thought the chicken soup was only for me, but I didnt expect others to have it too. If theres nothing left, there wont be a share for me, right?
How could that be? Ive already divided them.
MO Ruyue looked at the young man in front of her. Why did he look like Lin Daiyu?
Seeing Li Zeyans disappointed expression, MO Ruyueforted him,Next time, Ill just make chicken soup for you. How about that?
Really? Li Zeyan blinked.
l wont lie.
Wait until she was free. If she wasnt, then forget it.
After all, she was quite busy and had to cook for the Demon Lord.
Sister, 1 nted a lot of vegetables.
Sister, fly a kite with me.
Sister
Li Zeyan kept calling her sister, and his voice was exceptionally sweet.
Mo Ruyue looked at Li Zeyan. Why did she feel that Li Zeyan was bing more and more childish?
His dependence on her grew stronger and stronger.
Zeyan, have you changed into another person?
MO Ruyue joked.
Li Zeyans expression turned cold. Could it be that his sister had sensed it?
Then, did Sister still remember him?
Sister, did you remember something?
Me?
MO Ruyue shook her head and asked in confusion, What am I thinking of?
Its nothing.
Li Zeyan sighed. He thought that his sister had remembered the past.
It was a pity that his sister had no recollection of the past.
But it didnt matter. It was fine as long as he was by his sisters side.
As for the rest, it was not important at all.
Im going to attend the Immortal Alliance Conference in a while. At that time, you stay in the Demon World and wait for me toe back, understand?
MO Ruyue reminded him. She had no intention of bringing Li Zeyan to that ce.
That ce was still a little unsafe. Moreover, Li Zeyan did not have much cultivation. It would not be good if he was identally targeted by others..
Chapter 764 - 764: Must I Go?
Chapter 764 - 764: Must I Go?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Why? Cant I go with my sister?
Of course not. That ce is too dangerous. It will be dangerous for you to go with me.
MO Ruyue rubbed Li Zeyans head.
The current Li Zeyan was just a fair and tender boy. It could be seen how well he was living in the Demon Realm.
Back then, she was so yellow and thin that it made peoples hearts ache.
Li Zeyan lowered his head. He wanted to tell his sister that he was actually an ancient demonic beast, the Fire Qilin.
However, he was afraid that he would expose his identity and scare his sister.
Be good. Tell me what you want. I can buy it for you.
Zeyan doesnt need anything. Li Zeyan shook his head.
You dont need anything?
No need.
Alright, you can rest assured. I will definitely return safely.
MO Ruyue looked at Li Zeyan with a sigh. He had no family and was a child without anyone to rely on.
Just thinking about it made her heart ache.
Then Ill return to the devil pce first.
Okay, sister, you go ahead first. Li Zeyan nodded.
He watched as MO Ruyue left.
Sister, youve really forgotten about me.
But fortunately, I will remember you.
MO Ruyue returned to the Demon Pce and saw the Godly Doctor He Xi and the Demon Venerable ying chess leisurely.
Hillghost, on the other hand, was taking a nap on a tree.
There was a faint floral fragrance in the air, which was faintly discernible as it came with the breeze.
Master, 1 1 m back.
MO Ruyue called out with a faint smile on her beautiful face.
Ming Sihan didnt even look at MO Ruyue and said directly, Then you can continue practicing your sword.
Hearing these words, the smile on MO Ruyues face gradually disappeared. She approached Ming Sihan, pursed her red lips and whispered,Master, can you let me rest for the afternoon?
Can we practice swordsmanship tomorrow?
Can you eat todays food tomorrow?
Ming Sihan listened to MO Ruyues words with a serious expression.
He was a very strict master.
As the saying goes, a strict teacher produces outstanding students.
MO Ruyue was stunned. Actually, its not impossible. You wont die from hunger.
He Xi couldnt help butugh out loud when she heard that. She said to Ming Sihan,Your disciple is really interesting.
Godly Doctor, you tter me. she said humbly.
She felt that her master was training her too frequently. Although it was for her own good, she still had to strike a bnce between work and rest.
Ming Sihan red at Crane Creek. What was this guy doing?
I have to practice the sword.
His tone was firm, as if there was no room for negotiation.
Seeing this, MO Ruyue snorted and said,If you want to practice the sword, then so be it.
She felt that she had mastered it Quite well.
However, Ming Sihan felt that it wasnt enough.
As a mere Aura Refining cultivator, she could now fight a Jindan Stage cultivator of a higher level. Was that not enough to prove her strength?
Perhaps her master had not seen her power yet.
[Salted Fish System: Please climb onto the Demon Lords bed and sleep with him for a night.]]
Suddenly, the Salted Fish System seemed to have received some kind of stimtion and suddenly issued a mission.
Upon hearing about the mission, MO Ruyue staggered and almost fell.
Are you kidding me? You want me to climb into the Demon Lords bed and sleep with him for a night?
What the hell is this system?
MO Ruyue found it hard to ept.
Whats wrong? Ming Sihan seemed to notice MO Ruyue looking in his direction. Hezily raised his eyes and asked in a low voice.
Was she still dissatisfied with being asked to practice swordsmanship?
MO Ruyue opened her mouth and shook her head. Nothing, nothing.
What the hell, was Salted Fish sick in the head? He had issued such a mission.
Fortunately, the mission was not apulsory mission, so she could choose to give up.
If he gave up the mission, the system would not be able to issue other missions in the future.
Although she thought so, MO Ruyue was still looking forward to the reward from the Salted Fish System.
At the very least, the brick and the eternal experience of heavenly punishment were really fragrant.
Of course, 100% empempty-handed was also very speechless.
Fortunately, the experience of catching a de with bare hands had expired.
She decided to act ording to the situation.
At night, MO Ruyue deliberately walked past Ming Sihans room.
Ming Sihan was sitting on the bed, meditating.
If you dont need to sleep, how can you sleep together?
MO Ruyue muttered softly. She felt that the System had given her a difficult problem.
The missions in the past were very serious and simple. They were all within her ability.
However, the current mission was more or less difficult.
For the sake of the reward, she had better think about it.
Why are you sneaking around at the door?
Ming Sihan asked with his eyes closed. He could tell who was at the door by the sound of footsteps.
Ming Sihan slowly opened his eyes and his gaze fell on MO Ruyue, who was standing at the door.
After being discovered, MO Ruyue tiptoed into the room and came to see if Master was asleep, but 1 didnt expect Master to still be asleep.
MO Ruyue smiled and continued asking,Master, dont you need to lie on the bed to sleep?
No need.
Ming Sihan didnt think too much about it.
He was at the peak of the original level, so sleeping or not basically didnt affect him.
He usually meditated to calm his mind.
MO Ruyue looked at the huge bed. It should be able to fit four or five people, right?
Then wouldnt your bed be a waste? You dont sleep, why dont you just sit on the chair and meditate?
She casually said a few sentences.
He felt that he would not be able toplete his mission.
After all, this man did not need to sleep, and the mission was for her to sleep with the Demon Lord.
Ming Sihan nced at MO Ruyue.
Are you teaching me how to do things? He asked if this woman was being too nosy.
Why was he sleeping alone?
l dont dare, I dont dare. I was just casually saying it. Master, dont take it to heart.
MO Ruyue hurriedly said.
Seeing that Ming Sihan was meditating, he continued,Master, have a good rest. Ill go back first.
Just as she reached the door, she heard Ming Sihans voice.
Where are you going?
Go back to my original ce.
MO Ruyue stopped in her tracks, turned around, and spoke without thinking.
After all, she had promised Li Zeyan that she would go back to sleep tonight. Doesnt the Demon Pce have a ce for you to stay?
This woman was leaving?
Ming Sihans pupils shrank, and there was a hint of danger in his eyes.
MO Ruyue coughed lightly and said,Yes, of course I have a ce to stay in the Demon Pce, but Ive already promised Zeyan that Ill go back to sleep tonight.
l cant go back on my word, right?
She muttered softly.
Ming Sihans expression changed when he heard Li Zeyans name.
This woman had no idea that Li Zeyan was a demonic beast.
As Li Zeyan did not have any intention of harming MO Ruyue, he did not bother about Li Zeyans affairs.
As long as he did not cause trouble for the Demon Realm, it was fine.
However, if Li Zeyan had any intentions of harming Ruyue, he would not indulge Li Zeyan.
Even if they were of the same species.
Both he and Li Zeyan were demonic beasts.
Must we go?
Ming Sihan asked. Was this woman going to leave the Demon Pce for Li Zeyan?
For some reason, Ming Sihan felt a little stifled. The matter that 1 promised others
MO Ruyues voice became softer and softer.
If Ming Sihan did not agree, then she could not go..
Chapter 765 - 765: Alliance Meeting
Chapter 765 - 765: Alliance Meeting
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
My bed is a little cold. Help me warm it up before you go.
Ah?
The Demon Lord wanted her to warm up her bed?
Wasnt this a little inappropriate?
What, you dont want to?
Ming Sihan!s voice was deep and dangerous.
He just didnt want MO Ruyue to leave his side just to apany Li Zeyan.
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes. Perhaps she could finish her task first.
Im willing. How can I not be willing?
As she spoke, she took the initiative to walk toward the bed, then took off her shoes and crawled under the covers.
It was the first time shey on a big bed. The bed was very soft and carried the unique fragrance of Ming Sihan.
MO Ruyue took a deep breath. This was Ming Sihans scent.
It was a fragrant and cold fragrance.
Master, is it because your bed is too cold that you dont want to lie on it? MO Ruyue was covered with a nket, only her head was exposed.
She did not get a reply.
Ming Sihan was still sitting there, meditating. He didnt move at all like a Buddha.
MO Ruyue didnt feel embarrassed and continued, Master, there shouldnt be a filial disciple like me these days, right?
After her master passed away in the future, the position of the Demon Lord should be handed over to her.
Dont disturb my meditation. Ming Sihan said in a low voice.
Oh.
MO Ruyue replied.
Her master was really cold.
Just like that, MO Ruyue fell asleep unknowingly.
When she woke up, it was already the next morning.
MO Ruyue sat up on the bed and looked at the man who was still meditating.
Master, you didnt sleep the whole night, did you? She had actually slept here for the entire night.
Ming Sihan opened his eyes. Did you sleep well? Its alright, but the bed is too soft. I think a harder bed is better.
MO Ruyue stretched her back, feeling sore all over.
Then, she said, I promised yesterday that I would apany Li Zeyan, but 1 stood him up. I have to go and see him.
Seriously, I identally overslept.
However, the demon didnt even remind him and let her sleep on the bed.
He had slept on the Demon Lords bed for a night and had yet toplete his mission.
Im hungry.
Ming Sihan saw that MO Ruyue was going to see Li Zeyan again, so he found a random excuse.
He knew that he could stop them for a while, but he could not stop them forever.
However, he would stop them if he could.
This
MO Ruyue hesitated.
You dont want to cook? You want me to starve? Didnt you say that you were filial to me? Is this your so-called filial piety?
Ming Sihans consecutive questions made MO Ruyue speechless.
Taking money from others and doing things for others.
Master, I didnt say I wasnt going to cook.
It was really difficult.
Why was the Demon Venerable bing more and more difficult to deal with?
It was so difficult to deal with. He had to pay more,
MO Ruyue thought to herself.
But you hesitated. You hesitated, which means you dont want to.
Ming Sihan pointed it out.
Is your so-called filial piety just something you say?
Ahem, Master, Ill go cook now and make you something delicious.
MO Ruyue hurriedly replied. She really couldnt handle this man.
Seeing MO Ruyue leave, Ming Sihans face showed a victorious expression. After making breakfast, MO Ruyue was still thinking about Li Zeyan.
Master, you should eat first.
Mo Ruyue nned to go back while Ming Sihan was having breakfast.
He had to go back and exin to Li Zeyan why he didnt go back to sleepst night.
Otherwise, Li Zeyan would start to let his imagination run wild again.
Ming Sihan seemed to have seen through MO Ruyues thoughts and slowly said,Eating alone is very boring. Sit down and eat with me.
He wanted to see how MO Ruyue would find an excuse to leave the Demon
MO Ruyue was speechless.
Master, why did you be so pretentious?
Did he need her to sit down and eat with him?
What, you dont want to? What happened to filial piety? Ming Sihan frowned and his face darkened.
Im willing, Im willing. Im 100,000 times more willing.
MO Ruyue had no choice but to sit down and eat with Ming Sihan.
Ming Sihan ate very slowly and tasted the food bit by bit.
Anyone who ate so slowly in school would have been scolded to death by their parents.
MO Ruyue secretly shook her head.
My skills are getting better and better.
Ming Sihan couldnt help but praise him.
Master, you tter me.
After all, she had been cooking for so long, so her culinary skills must be better than before.
If her cooking skills were getting worse and worse, then it really wouldnt make sense.
After breakfast, the sun was already high up in the sky.
Mo Ruyue decided to go back to see Li Zeyan.
The sunshine is good today. Clean up my room from top to bottom.
Ming Sihan ordered, not giving MO Ruyue any time to spare. Didnt someone else clean Masters room?
I feel that you are more meticulous, so you will clean up.
Alright then.
Mo Ruyue reluctantly agreed.
The Immortal Alliance Conference was about to begin, and it was held at Ethereal Mountain.
On the peak of Ethereal Mountain, there was a circr venue. The peak was covered in clouds all year round, like a paradise.
From here, one could see one-third of the Nine Regions.
There was a portal in the middle of the venue.
There was a huge bronze bell between the two peaks.
A few birds with white feathers were resting on the bronze bell.
As the sun rose, the entire Misty mountain became lively.
Those small sects had entered Misty Mountain early, but those more famous immortal sects had arrivedte.
After all, the more powerful one was, the slower they would enter.
The entrance of the September Immortal Gate
As the disciples voice rang out, everyone looked at the entrance. A group of disciples in yellow came in from outside, and every disciple carried a long sword.
The handsome man and beautiful woman became a beautiful scenery.
The other disciples whispered to each other.
The Spirit Path Immortal Sect has entered
The entire venue was in an uproar again. Everyones eyes were fixed on the entrance. They saw a group of disciples in green entering. Almost all of them were male disciples, and there was not a single female disciple.
Most of the male immortal cultivators withdrew their gazes. There were no female disciples, so there was nothing to see.
Those sect leaders who had entered the venue had already arrived at the sect leaders area. They needed to witness the start of the Immortal Alliance Conference.
Tomato Immortal Sect has entered
A group of disciples dressed in red came in from outside. The entire scene was filled with yin and yang. There were more female disciples than male disciples, which attracted many male disciples from other immortal sects.
The sect master of the Tomato Immortal Sect was a woman.
Almost all the immortal sects had arrived, leaving only Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Xuanling Immortal Sect
The originally noisy venue instantly quieted down, and everyones eyes were fixed on the door.
A group of fairy-like men came in from outside, and there were some female disciples among them.
The one who caught everyones attention was not the disciple, but the sect master of Xuanling Immortal Sect, Ling Shoumo.
That Ling Shoumo who had the title of the most handsome man among the immortal sects.
The sect leader of Xuanling Sect is too good-looking.
The sect leader of Xuanling Sect is outstanding and graceful.
Sect Leader Xuan Ling
Ling Shoumos appearance caused the women present to shout.
After all, good-looking people were always easy to remember..
Chapter 766 - 766: The Infamous Devil World
Chapter 766: The Infamous Devil World
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When Ling Shoumo appeared in the sect leaders seat, the other sect leaders stood up one after another with a hint of respect in their eyes.
Sect Master Xuanling, please sit.
Ling Shoumo nodded slightly.
He was dressed in a spotless white, and his expression was indifferent, as if he did not have much emotion.
He was like a machine without emotions.
Everyone was already used to Ling Shoumos cold and aloof attitude.
The fact that Ling Shoumo was able to attend this Immortal Sect Conference meant that he attached great importance to this Immortal Alliance Conference.
If he didnt value the Immortal Alliance Conference, he wouldnt havee here.
Among them, the sect master of the Nine Moons Immortal Sect stood up and gave a speech to the disciples of the Immortal Sect.
Wee to Ethereal Mountain to participate in this Immortal Alliance Conference. The Immortal Alliance Conference is also held to test everyones strength. The content of the test is the same as in previous years. I hope everyone can do their best to obtain good results
After the sect master of the Nine Moons Immortal Sect finished speaking, there was a round of apuse.
The Sect Leader of the Nine Moons Immortal Sect said to the Sect Leader of the Tomato Immortal Sect,Sister Xing Lan, please announce the rules of thepetition.
The Tomato Sect Leader nodded slightly and walked onto the stage. She used her cultivation to spread her sweet voice to every corner of Ethereal Mountain.
It allowed every disciple to hear the rules of thepetition clearly.
Just as she announced the start of thepetition, she heard a voiceing from outside the venue.
Demon WorldEnter
As soon as he finished speaking, other than Ling Shoumo, who was sitting calmly, everyone else stood up and looked at the door with a solemn expression.
Why would the Demon Realme over? Was it courting death?
All the disciples felt their hearts tighten.
Many disciples had never heard of the Demon Realm.
The Demon Realm and the immortal sects were almost ipatible.
MO Ruyue loosened her grip on the cor of the registered disciple with an arrogant look on her face.
He came here to cause trouble, so shouldnt he be a little more arrogant?
Those disciples still wanted to stop the Demon Realm. They really overestimated themselves.
Master, we can go in now. We just need to beat these guys up.
MO Ruyue pped her hands and returned to Ming Sihans side.
Ming Sihan nced at the disciples who were so scared that their legs went weak. He then directly stepped into Misty Mountain.
Everyone saw the people from the Demon Realm enter the stage.
The clothes of the Demon Realm were mainly ck, but there were also red, purple, and green clothes.
MO Ruyue slightly raised her eyes and saw Ling Shoumo.
Ling Shoumo seemed to be looking at her too.
Demon Venerable, what do you want to do?
The Spirit Path Sect Master stood up and questioned loudly.
Everyone here was from the immortal sect, so he was not afraid of the Demon Venerable.
If he couldnt deal with the Demon Venerable, Ling Shoumo could.
What are you doing? Naturally, Im going to participate in the Immortal Alliance Conference.
Ming Sihanughed coldly. With a powerful aura around him, he flew up andnded on the seat of the sect leader.
The other sect leaders retreated. Who knew if this demon would suddenly kill someone?
MO Ruyue also brought her Senior Brothers to their seats, which happened to be next to Xuanling Immortal Sect.
They hade today to p the face of the sect of Immortals.
The Nine Moons Immortal School gritted their teeth. We dont wee you! This demon actually brought people from the Devil World to the Immortal Alliance Conference.
These demonic cultivators were not worthy of sitting together with immortal cultivators.
Demonic cultivation was self-indulgence,mitting all kinds of evil, and everyone had the right to punish them.
Its up to you to wee me.
Ming Sihan shouted coldly and sat down beside Ling Shoumo. The corners of his mouth curled up like a demon.
His words made those sect leaders not dare to retort.
The sect leaders looked at Ling Shoumo with pleading eyes.
Xuanling Sect Master, say something. Why are you like a block of wood? Cant you speak?
Didnt you see the devil stepping on your nose?
Other than Ling Shoumo, there was no one here who could control this demon.
Two figures, one ck and one white, sat side by side. The disciples below watched this scene, wondering how the Xuanling Sect Master would deal with the arrogant demon.
Ling Shoumo nced at Ming Sihan and said coldly, What are you doing here?
Ive said it before. In order to participate in the Immortal Alliance Conference, wellpete to see if your disciples from the Immortal Sect or the disciples from the Demon Realm are stronger.
Ming Sihan leaned back in his chair and looked at MO Ruyue from afar.
Youre here to find trouble.
You can say that.
The sect leader looked at Ling Shoumo and Ming Sihans questions and answers, feeling anxious and helpless.
Why didnt Ling Shoumo chase Ming Sihan out?
Ming Sihan was a devil, and he absolutely couldnt tolerate it.
Then lets see how your Demon Realm loses.
Ling Shoumo tilted his head, his eyes filled with contempt.
Although Ming Sihans strength was almost the same as his, Ming Sihans subordinates were only so-so.
She didnt know how Ming Sihan was so confident that he could attend the Immortal Alliance Conference.
Hehe, dont talk big. Be careful not to hurt your tongue.
Ming Sihan smiled coldly. He was finally going against Ling Shoumo.
He couldnt guarantee the strength of MO Chengfeng and the others, but he could guarantee MO Ruyues strength.
After all, she was a woman he had personally trained. How bad could she be?
There was another reason for him toe here, which was to help Ruyue achieve a breakthrough in her cultivation.
Ruyues current strength was at the bottleneck of the Aura Refining realm. Once she broke through, she would be at the Foundation Building realm. The Immortal Alliance Conference was the perfect opportunity to break through.
How could he miss the opportunity in front of him?
Then lets wait and see.
Ling Shoumo did not take the disciples of the Demon Realm seriously at all.
In his eyes, they were all jokes.
She didnt know where Ming Sihan got his courage from.
Howughable.
The corners of the other sect leaders mouths twitched. Shouldnt Ling Shoumo be fighting with Ming Sihan?
They were a Celestial Sect, and Ming Sihan was a demon. How could a demon be on the same level as a Celestial Sect?
The sect leaders were unconvinced, but they did not dare to say anything.
He could only resent Ling Shoumo for agreeing to let the disciples of the Demon Realm participate.
Whats going on? The sect master of Xuanling actually agreed to let the disciples of the Demon World join thepetition!
Shh, keep your voice down. Thats a demon. Do you want to die?
Do you think Im afraid of those evil people? No matter what, this is the territory of the immortal sect. What can he do to me?
Thats true, but we should still be careful.
l dont agree to their participation. Who knows if their methods are clean?
Everyone knows that the Demon Realm is despicable and shameless
Under the watchful eyes of the public, they shouldnt dare to use any despicable methods. If they dare to use despicable methods, they will lose.
Thats true. If you dare to use despicable methods, then just wait to lose. The people of the Demon Realm had done despicable things for a long time.
The notorious Demon Realm was hated by everyone.
Ming Sihan nced at the few sect leaders who were whispering to each other, and his eyes shone with a cold light.
Those sect leaders immediately shut their mouths. Their gossip behind them was overheard.
These shameless immortal sects only said that the Devil Realm was despicable, why didnt they mention the despicable things they had done?
Lan Qi stared at MO Ruyue. This woman must be the Saintess, right?
However, MO Ruyue was nowhere to be seen among these people. Was that woman dead or something? He couldnt contact her, and she was nowhere to be seen.
Mo Ruyue knew that Lan Qi was sizing her up, but she pretended not to see it.
Lan Qi probably never dreamed that she, MO Ruyue, was the Saintess of the Devil World.
Apart from Lan Qi who was sizing up MO Ruyue, Zhao Xin was also present.
When Zhao Xin saw MO Ruyue, his expression turned grave. He seemed to have seen this woman somewhere before.
He thought about it carefully and finally remembered something.
It should be a cookingpetition. That woman was participating.
Because this woman was good-looking, he paid more attention to her.
He had never expected that this woman was actually the Saintess of the
Demon Realm..
Chapter 767 - 767: Who Will Become Number One
Chapter 767: Who Will Be Number One
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Chengfeng noticed the gaze from the side and scolded coldly, What are you looking at? Havent you seen the Saintess before? Your Demon Realm is not worthy of sitting with us!
Lan Qi said unhappily.
His tone was filled with disdain.
These people from the Demon Realm should get lost.
Whether youre worthy or not depends on your strength, not your mouth!
MO Ruyue shot a cold nce at Lan Qi.
His eyes were filled with contempt.
They thought that they were amazing just because they were from the Xuanling Immortal Sect, and their tails were stuck up to the sky.
Today, he would let her rub his spirit.
He even looked down on others. Who gave him face?
Hahaha, is your Demon Realm worthy of strength?
Lan Qi could not help butugh. Hadnt the Demon Realm always been famous for being despicable and shameless?
How dare you talk about strength.
They were just some despicable and shameless people.
We arent worthy, but are you worthy?
MO Ruyue turned her head. She was already very unhappy with Lan Qi.
Back then, when their strength was too great, she did not dare to touch Lan Qi and let him be arrogant in front of her.
But now, Lan Qi still dared to be arrogant. She had to find a good opportunity to let Lan Qi know what it meant to be powerful.
We are worthy, you are worthy!
Seeing this, Chen Yuluo also spoke up.
It would have been better if she hadnt said anything. All of MO Ruyues Senior Brothers looked at Chen Yuluo coldly.
Did this woman want to die?
y a few rounds!
MO Ruyue snorted. Did they really think that the disciples of the Devil World were weaklings?
The two groups of people were at daggers drawn, and a war was about to break out.
The disciples of the other immortal sects all had expressions of watching a good show. They were not prepared to interfere in these matters.
However, in his heart, he still hoped that the Mystic Spirit Immortal Sect would trample the people of the Demon World under their feet.
Lets see how arrogant the people of the Demon Realm can be.
Very soon, the Nine Celestial Sects announced on the stage that the Devil
World was participating in thispetition.
l hope that everyone will respect the rules of thepetition. Thepetition will determine the style and standard of thepetition. Anyone who ys tricks will be dealt with as a vition and eliminated from thepetition.
The Sect Leader of the Nine Moons Immortal Sect nced at MO Ruyue as he spoke.
It was obvious that he was intentionally telling MO Ruyue and the others. I didnt expect the Demon Realm to be targeted like this!
Ye Junlin couldnt help but say. He wasnt angry, because the ones who should be angry should be those immortal sects.
Let those immortal sects and the other priests be proud of themselves first.
In a while, they would be proud of themselves.
Mo Ruyue touched the two swords by her side. This time, she was here to massacre the novice vige.
Although she was also from a novice vige, her strength was not the same as that of a novice vige.
Soon, Ling Shoumo flew up.
His figurended at the teleportation portal in the middle of the venue.
The teleportation portal needed to be opened. Generally, it required three Golden Core cultivators to work together to open it.
Sometimes, three Golden Core cultivators might not be able to open the portal. They needed a certain amount of luck.
Ling Shoumo alone could open the portal.
At this moment, Ling Shoumo became the center of attention.
Mo Ruyues beautiful eyes stared at the figure. That man was once her master, but he had never looked her in the eye.
She was one of the many disciples in Xuanling Celestial Sect and was very inconspicuous.
In the Demon Realm, she was the only disciple taken in by the Demon Lord among so many people.
One treated her like dust, while the other treated her like a treasure.
If it was a normal person, they would choose someone who treated them as treasures.
Only abnormal people would like people who regarded themselves as dust.
So what if Ling Shoumo was like a star in everyones eyes? In her eyes, he was nothing.
The stars in her eyes were the demon lord and Ming Sihan.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but nce at Ming Sihan. Ming Sihan was also looking at her.
Their eyes met. MO Yuyue didnt know where to look.
Could Master not keep looking at her?
She felt embarrassed.
Under everyones watchful eyes, Ling Shoumo opened the portal. The disciples below all revealed excited expressions.
Everyone wanted to shine during thepetition and bring glory to their families.
They wanted their masters to see their performance.
Lan Qi turned his head and said to MO Ruyue, Well see the real deal during thepetition. Well soon find out if hes really good or just bluffing.
Lets ride a donkey and read a song.
MO Ruyue sneered. This time, she would let Lan Qi experience her power.
Did she really think that she was the useless person from three years ago?
At the thought of this, MO Ruyues beautiful eyes were filled with excitement.
Lan Qi did not like her, and she did not like Lan Qi either.
As everyone entered the portal, an endless forest appeared in front of them.
The sky was covered with ayer of colorful colors. The sun was setting in the west, and it seemed that it would soon be dark.
Mo Ruyue looked around but did not see her Senior Brothers.
This was actually equivalent to an individual battlefield, or a team battle.
Danger lurked in the forest, and there were many demons and monsters around. The contestants needed to kill these demons and monsters to earn points.
The monsters and demons in the forest were divided into different levels. The higher the level of killing, the more points would be obtained.
Of course, the higher the level of the monsters, the harder it was to deal with.
He might lose his life here.
Therefore, he tried his best to stay with the people from his own sect. At least he could take care of them.
Im actually here alone.
MO Ruyue pursed her lips. She was prepared to kill the monsters and devils while looking for her Senior Brothers.
Time was limited, so he couldnt waste too much time looking for her. MO Ruyue thought for a moment and walked forward.
At this moment, the sect leaders were waiting outside. The rankings of the immortal sects and individual points had not appeared on the teleportation portal yet.
Usually at this time, they would more or less squeeze together and chat.
But now, because Ming Sihan was here, everyone was silent, and the atmosphere was very depressing.
Ling Shoumo, the sect leader of Xuanling Sect, also said nothing.
Everyone was used to Ling Shoumos taciturn personality, but they were not Ling Shoumo, so they were not as calm as Ling Shoumo.
It was fine to hold it in for a while, but he couldnt hold it in for a long time without speaking.
Holding it in for too long was not good for the body.
They couldnt talk here, so they went somewhere else to talk.
Ethereal Mountain was so big, and it wasnt like there wasnt a ce to talk.
This demon, where did he get the confidence toe over topete with our immortal sects disciples?
Puxin. Hes so ordinary but so confident. Just because hes powerful doesnt mean that his subordinates are powerful.
Indeed, what you said makes sense.
However, the Demon Realm Saintess should have some skills.
She has some tricks. She wouldnt have be the Holy Maiden of the Demon World, but shes definitely far inferior to the disciples of our immortal sect.
Yes, just a little powerful.
The two sect leaders of the small immortal sects were secretly discussing these things.
He did not put the people of the Demon Realm in his eyes.
The immortal sects were full of talents, and all of them were elites. There were only one or two powerful ones in the demon world, so how could theypare to their disciples?
Ling Shoumo and Ming Han both stared at the portal in silence.
They didnt know who would be the champion, or whose name would appear
In the nk area.
Mo Ruyue walked for a while and felt a little bored. She didnt encounter any spiritual monsters or demonic creatures at all. Were there really any dangerous things here?
Hillghost darted out of MO Ruyues sleeve. It could finallye out and move around..
Chapter 768 - 768: Former Senior Brother
Chapter 768 - 768: Former Senior Brother
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ghostly, youve worked hard.
MO Ruyue patted Hillghosts head.
She was afraid that those guys would not let her bring the mountain ghost in, so she had the mountain ghost shrink and hide in her clothes.
It was created when he came here.
At this moment, an eyeball rolled to her feet.
MO Ruyue frowned slightly. Just as she was about to pick it up, her eyeball exploded and a demonic creature appeared. The demonic creature was covered in a gray light and was transparent. It had a ghostly face.
The ghost had scarlet eyes and sharp fangs.
Squeak
Hillghost made a sound, but it was toote.
MO Ruyue was blinded by the green smoke that the demonic creature spat out. When she opened her eyes again, it was an unfamiliar pce. The pce was surrounded by clouds and mist, like an immortal pce.
Vaguely, MO Ruyue felt that this ce was a little familiar.
When she wanted to take another step forward, the pce disappeared and she woke up.
Looking at the demonic creature with its bloody mouth wide open, MO Ruyue pulled out the Heaven Executioner and the Ghost Sense beside her.
She used her Neb Sword Technique to turn around and dodge the monsters bloody mouth. At the same time, she attacked the monster.
However, this demonic creature was incorporeal, and the Heaven Executioner and Ghost Sense were useless against it.
This monster was like a ball of gas without a physical body.
Soon, MO Ruyue discovered that the eyeball on the ground seemed to be the original body of the devil.
Other than attacking her eyeballs, she had no other ce to attack.
He had no choice but to give it his all.
Anyway, this demon couldnt do anything to her.
MO Ruyue put the two swords together. The ck and white light gates were especially obvious.
He seemed to feel a surge of power surging into his body.
She leaped up and stabbed the tip of the sword into her eyeball.
The monster was instantly shattered and disappeared into the air.
The tip of the sword stabbed into the ground, and the eyeball disappeared.
The battle came and ended very quickly. It didnt take MO Ruyue much time.
Her strength seemed to have broken through from Qi Refining to Foundation Establishment. In other words, she was qualified to learn sword kinesis flight.
Thinking of this, MO Ruyues face lit up with joy. She was too lucky.
A small demonic creature could actually allow her cultivation to break through directly.
Im so f* * *king awesome.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but praise herself.
When she returned, she would immediately ask her master to teach her how to fly on a sword.
He would never have to go out and ride a horse again.
Outside
A name appeared in the nk space of the portal. MO Ruyue had obtained 100 points and was temporarily ranked first.
Who is this MO Ruyue? The September Sect Leader stood up excitedly. He saw MO Ruyues name.
Usually, the sects name would only appear when the umted points exceeded 500. Therefore, they had no idea who MO Ruyue was or which sect she came from.
The Spirit Path Sect Master shook his head and said, I dont know. Anyway, its not our immortal sect. It looks like a girls name. She should be a disciple of the Tomato Immortal Sect. As expected of the disciple of Sister Xing Lan.
Shes so powerful.
Everyones gaze fell on Xing Lan.
With an awkward smile on her face, Xing Lan exined,This MO Ruyue is not a disciple of our Tomato Immortal Sect.
She had hoped that he was a disciple of the Tomato Immortal Sect, but he wasnt.
She had carefully selected the disciples she brought to thepetition, so she naturally remembered their names.
Tomato Immortal Sect really didnt have a disciple named MO Ruyue.
If he isnt from your Tomato Sect, then which sect is he from?
The Sect Leader of September Sect was puzzled. If it was not from the Tomato Immortal Sect, then which immortal sect was it from?
He swept his gaze around and found that all the sect leaders had expressions of understanding.
Only the Demon Venerable had an unfathomable expression, and the Xuanling Sect Master had a solemn expression.
Thinking about it, the leader of the nine moons couldnt help but ask Ling Shoumo curiously,Sect Master Xuanling, is MO Ruyue a disciple of your sect?
Ling Shoumo didnt respond, but he looked at Ming Sihan.
Ming Sihan leanedzily against the back of his chair and ignored Ling Shoumo.
He was in a very good mood at the moment.
After Lan Qis reminder, he knew that the disciple sent by Xuanling Immortal Sect was called MO Ruyue.
Then, MO Ruyue added another 100 points.
Everyone was even more puzzled. Could it be that there was a mistake in the statistics?
MO Ruyues name was the only one that appeared. The others names did not appear for a long time.
Moreover, no one knew which immortal sect MO Ruyue was from.
Who exactly is this MO Ruyue?
Could it be someone from the Demon Realm? Impossible, theres no way such a powerful person exists in the Devil Realm. Perhaps he i s a disciple of Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Dont talk nonsense here. Wont you be able to see the name of the immortal sect when you get 500 points?
Thats true, but its not normal to get 100 points at a time. It takes at least two people to deal with a 100-point spiritual monster or demonic creature.
It felt strange.
MO Ruyues identity was too mysterious.
At this moment, Lan Qis name also appeared on it, but Lan Qi only had 50 points.
He was still a hundred and fifty points away from the first secret, MO Yue.
In the blink of an eye, the difference was over 250 points.
The names of the others also appeared one after another, but most of them had 20 to 30 points.
The demons and monsters he dealt with were only ordinary monsters.
MO Ruyue finally found MO Chengfeng and Xia Zhixing,
Senior Brother MO, Ive finally found you.
Junior Sister.
MO Chengfeng looked at MO Ruyue with a hint of surprise in his eyes.
Xia Zhixing wanted to say something, but he found that MO Ruyues eyes were fixed on MO Chengfeng. She didnt even look at him.
Looking at this scene, Xia Zhixing felt a little bitter.
Hows the situation on your side?
MO Ruyue asked curiously.
I just finished dealing with a gecko monster. Did everything go well for you guys?
MO Chengfeng examined MO Ruyues body to see if she was injured.
He heaved a sigh of relief when he saw that MO Ruyue wasnt injured.
Fortunately, these demons are still rtively easy to deal with. Moreover, my cultivation has broken through and Im now at the foundation establishment stage.
Is that so? Thats too good, thats too good, thats good, thats too good, thats too good, thats good, thats too good, thats good, thats good, that thats good, thats good, that
Yes.
Xia Zhixing couldnt say a word as she watched the two of them talk. She felt that she was redundant.
They were clearly both senior brothers, so why was there a difference in treatment?
Lets go look for the other Senior Brothers now, MO Ruyue suggested. Well meet them while killing the demons and monsters.
That works too.
Therefore, the three of them continued to walk forward. There were not many demons and monsters on the road.
Not long after, a small river appeared in front of them. The river water was flowing.
When the three of them were about to cross the river, they saw the disciples of Xuanling Immortal Sect appear here as well.
Its actually you guys.
Lan Qi looked at MO Ruyue and the other two with contempt.
All the disciples of Xuanling Immortal Sect had already gathered together.
MO Ruyue was still familiar with her former Senior Brothers.
However, none of those senior brothers seemed to recognize her.
In the past, when she was living with a mask, these senior brothers had never paid attention to her.
At this moment, MO Ruyue was d that these Senior Brothers had not paid any attention to her. Otherwise, even if she took off her mask, she would still be a little suspicious..
Chapter 769 - 769: Python
Chapter 769 - 769: Python
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Enemies meet on a narrow road.
MO Ruyue smiled faintly. From Lan Qis appearance, it seemed like he was about toy his hands on her.
That fellows hand was already gripping the hilt of his sword.
What? MO Ruyue continued, Do you still want to fight us? Bullying with numbers? Do you want to be eliminated?
She didnt want to be implicated and eliminated. Even if it was everyone, they had to wait until this round ofpetition was over before they yed.
Second Senior Brother Ji Xianfeng held Lan Qis hand and shook his head secretly. They could not vite the rules of thepetition. If they were eliminated, it would be too embarrassing.
Eldest Senior Brother, calm down. Lets not lower ourselves to the level of the people of the Demon Realm.
Ji Xianfeng advised.
Yes.
Lan Qi had no choice but to let go of the sword hilt, but he was still a little unhappy.
At this moment, a huge water snake jumped out of the water and bit Chen
Yuluo.
Ah, senior brother, save me
Chen Yuluo shouted for help and was dragged into the water in the next second.
Ji Xianfeng and Ye Xiong both jumped into the water, ready to save the others.
Lan Qi and the others stood on the shore and watched.
Junior Sister!
Lan Qi shouted.
He did not dare to go down, afraid that he would lose his life.
Since someone had already gone down, there was no need for him to be one more.
Soon, Ji Xianfeng and Ye Xiong dragged Chen Yuluo out of the water.
Chen Yuluo was already unconscious. One of her arms had been bitten off by the python.
Saving Chen Yuluo exhausted both Ye Xiong and Xianfeng.
The two of themy on the shore and panted heavily.
Third Brother and Zhao Xin also hurried over to help stop the bleeding on Chen Yuluos arm.
Fourth Brother Cheng Yi, Fifth Brother Wen Song, and Eldest Brother Lan Qi were watching from the side. They looked concerned, but they didnt do anything.
MO Ruyue observed everyones behavior. If Lan Qi could treat his junior sister so coldly, how could he treat her back then?
She wanted to repent in time and betray him.
At this moment, the python opened its bloody mouth from the water, as if it wanted to swallow everyone on the shore into its stomach.
Lan Qi pulled out his sword and rushed forward. He shouted at the people on the shore, Hurry up ande over to help.
This giant python was worth at least 300 points. If they could defeat it, Xuanling Immortal Sect would definitely get first ce.
At this moment, Lan Qi only had eyes for the giant python. As for the life and death of his junior brothers and sisters, he did not care.
In order to seed, some necessary sacrifices were worth it.
He didnt want to ruin his future for some irrelevant people.
Wen Song and Cheng Yi quickly went up to help.
MO Ruyue and the other two silently watched everything from the side.
Xia Zhixing frowned and said,Should we go help?
Those guys didnt seem to be going too well. They looked like they were
struggling.
He might even be eaten by the giant python.
MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng couldnt help but nce at Xia Zhixing.
Xia Zhixing was looked at by the two with a strange gaze, so she quickly exined, I just want them to have less prejudice against the Demon Realm and let them know that the Demon Realm is not that cruel.
Every time something bad happened to the Demon Realm, it was mostly because someone deliberately found fault.
The other party had already ced a knife on their necks. If it were a normal person, they would probably resist.
MO Ruyue crossed her arms and shook her head. Fifth Senior Brother was too naive.
She slowly said, Thats just what you think. Do you think that people will remember your kindness just because you did a good deed? Perhaps he remembered it at the time, but he might forget it in the blink of an eye.
I dont like to gamble. I dont like to bet.
The main reason was that she knew Lan Qi too well. It was not worth it to be nice to this guy.
Xia Zhixing was too idealistic.
Then are we going to do nothing?
Xia Zhixing pursed her lips and stared at MO Ruyue.
It was as if he had never understood this junior sister.
What are you doing? If you feel sorry for them, you can go and help them, but I wont go.
MO Ruyue said as she sat down on a tree stump.
If Xia Zhixing wanted to help, then go ahead. She wouldnt stop her anyway.
Everyone had the right to make their own choices. Why should she deprive others of their rights?
Since he had already said the opposite, it was up to Xia Zhixing to decide whether to listen or not.
Xia Zhixing thought for a while, then looked at MO Chengfeng and asked,Senior Brother MO, what do you think?
Should I help or not?
I think Ruyue is right. She might not even appreciate your help.
MO Chengfeng nodded slightly and casually fanned himself with the silver bone fracture fan in his hand.
She didnt know what Xia Zhixing was thinking. Then wouldnt it be bad if we dont do anything?
Xia Zhixing pursed her lips and looked at the intense scene.
MO Ruyue patted the stone beside her and said,Who says we have nothing to do? We can sit here and watch the show. Dont you want to watch such an exciting performance?
Alright, alright.
Xia Zhixing had no choice but to sit on the rock and watch the battle with MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng.
Lan Qi, Ji Xianfeng, Zhao Xin, Cheng Yi, Wen Song, and Ye Xiong attacked the python together.
Chen Yuluoy weakly on the rock, unable to help at all.
This is so exciting!
MO Ruyue couldnt help but praise him.
Lan Qi, are you useless? The python is on the left. Why are you using your right skill to hit the air?
D * mn, Lan Qi, youre useless. You cant even dodge this.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but curse when she saw Lan Qis actions and continued to give pointers offline.
This guys strength was about the same as a few years ago. There was no improvement.
What have you been doing these past few years?
Didnt Ling Shoumo teach Lan Qi properly?
To think that Lan Qi was the chief disciple of the Xuanling Immortal Sect.
It was obvious that he had no future in Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Lan Qi nced at MO Ruyues direction distractedly. This woman was really talkative and kept distracting him.
Just as he was distracted, the pythons tail pped down on him. He did not have time to dodge and the sword in his hand fell.
Trash!
MO Ruyue cursed in a low voice.
This Lan Qi was the eldest disciple of the Xuanling Immortal Sect after all. How could he be so useless?
He really couldnt stand it anymore.
Eldest Senior Brother!
Ji Xianfeng quickly went over to check on the situation and saw Lan Qi unconscious on the ground.
He quickly moved Lan Qi to a safe ce and then ced him on the ground.
Next to Lan Qi was Chen Yuluo, and now the two of them were lying together.
The others were still entangled with the python, but they were clearly not its match.
Looks like they cant deal with the giant python. They still need us to help. MO Ruyue sighed with a trace of regret on her face.
The pythons attack power was very strong, and the scales on its body were also very hard.
Ordinary iron swords could not hurt the python at all.
They dont look like theyre going to make it.
Xia Zhixing stared at the battle between the human and the python, her hands clenched into fists.
This python looked very difficult to deal with.
Even they might not be able topletely subdue the python..
Chapter 770 - 770: Skull
Chapter 770: Skull
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Perhaps it was because themotion here was too big that it attracted many immortal sect disciples.
The disciples looked at the scene in front of them.
Its the disciples of the Xuanling Immortal Sect who are entangled with the giant python.
Should we go up and help?
Its better not to go up. We cant even defeat the disciples of the Profound Spirit Immortal Sect.
But, we cant just leave him in the lurch, right?
Since you have such a sense of justice, you can go save him. Im not going.
Most of the immortal sect disciples stopped moving forward, and only a few immortal sect disciples came forward to help.
The immortal sect disciples who went up to help felt that their strength was extraordinary and they would definitely be able to defeat the giant python. In an instant, more than 20 immortal sect disciples surrounded the giant python.
Everyone used their unique skills, setting up formations and finding the pythons weakness.
The giant python roared towards the sky. It felt that these humans, who were as tiny as ants, were very annoying.
Although these peoples attacks were not painful to it, it was very annoyed when it was entangled.
It wanted to bite all of these humans to death, not leaving a single one alive.
It opened its bloody mouth and swooped down.
However, it was fast, and the disciples of the immortal sects were even faster.
The immortal sect disciples figure shed and he dodged it smoothly.
Damn it, this giant python has no weakness at all!
Yes, the giant python cant be pierced by swords or sabers. I reckon that only a divine weapon can be used against the giant python.
Other than the sect master, which disciple has a divine weapon?
MO Ruyue heard the voices of the disciples and subconsciously hid her two divine weapons behind her.
These were her things and she would not lend them out.
The python burrowed into the water, and the surface of the water was surging and undting.
There seemed to be something even more terrifying under the water.
The giant python has been chased away by us!
It seems that the giant python is still afraid of us.
Yes, I am.
The disciples of the immortal sects all revealed victorious expressions, as if they had won this battle.
Its over just like that?
MO Ruyues lips twitched. It seemed that it had ended a little too quickly.
MO Chengfeng stood up and stared at the surface of the water with his deep eyes, saying, l have a feeling that the giant python will appear again.
As soon as he finished speaking, an evenrger python crawled out from the bottom of the water.
This python was very beautiful in color. Its entire body was white.
It was even more beautiful than the ck python.
The others paled in fright, but MO Ruyue eximed,What a beautiful giant python!
The giant python roared and instantly stirred up a strong wind. This strong wind blew the surrounding disciples away.
Everyone, hide! Quickly hide!
Senior Brother, save me.
Senior Sister, I cant take it anymore.
Many disciples were blown away. Lan Qi and Chen Yuluo, who were lying on the ground, did not escape the misfortune. They were blown far away like kites.
And then, falling from the sky
Seeing this, MO Ruyue could not help butin, Wouldnt he get a concussion from the fall?
Coincidentally, there was a stone blocking the wind on their side, so they were fine hiding behind the stone.
If they had walked any further, they would have been blown away.
MO Ruyue was extremely d that she had chosen such a good ce.
MO Ruyue waited until the wind stopped and the trees quieted down before walking out.
Senior Brother, Ill go first. 1 think I can defeat the python.
MO Ruyues back was facing her two Senior Brothers as she pulled out the
Heaven Executioner and Ghost Sense without looking back. The two swords, one righteous and one evil, were in her hands.
Junior Sister, dont act rashly.
MO Chengfeng quickly stopped him, but it was toote.
MO Ruyue had already flown to the cliff.
Although he couldnt ride a flying sword, he could still fly for a short distance.
It was just a little exhausting.
MO Ruyue and the python looked at each other.
When the other disciples of the immortal sects saw this scene, they all hid behind the trees and watched the show, afraid that the innocent would be hurt.
This white python was even more powerful than the ck python.
He couldnt even defeat the ck Python, let alone this White Python.
Without even thinking, he knew that he could not defeat this white python.
The people from the demon world went up. They wanted to see how this woman would deal with the white python.
Come on, Im not afraid of you.
MO Ruyue said coldly.
The white python suddenly opened its mouth.
Xia Zhixing and MO Chengfeng both watched this scene closely.
He was ready to go up and help at any time. Mn Mo Ruyue was already prepared to take the blow.
However, a strong suction force sucked her into his mouth.
You cant y like this!
MO Ruyues voice disappeared in the air. Everything around her turned dark, and her body kept falling.
The plot should not be like this.
Junior Sister!
Junior Sister!
Xia Zhixing and MO Ruyue watched helplessly as MO Ruyue was swallowed by the giant white python.
The two of them rushed forward without hesitation, but the white python ignored them and dived into the water, disappearing from their sight.
Junior Sister
MO Chengfeng cried out in self-reproach. Ruyue had actually been swallowed by the snake.
Xia Zhixingy on the shore, looking at the water where the white python was nowhere to be seen. She then punched into the water.
At this moment, Baili Xi saw Ye Yunfeng, Ye Junlin, Jing Xichen, and Qi Shaoyuing over.
When they came over, they only saw MO Chengfeng and Xia Zhixing.
He did not know what had happened here.
He only heard some movement from afar.
Senior Brother MO, why are you all here? Isnt Ruyue with you?
Jing Xichen couldnt help but ask, frowning.
MO Chengfeng came back to his senses and looked at the five men behind him.
He said with difficulty, Ruyue was swallowed by the giant python
What?
The five of them revealed expressions of disbelief. Ru Yue had actually been swallowed by the giant python.
What, what was going on?
Baili Xi asked with a heavy expression, What about the giant python?
Xia Zhixing stood up from the ground and pointed at the water. The python dived into the water and then disappeared.
How could this be
Qi Shaoyus face was filled with heartache as he stared nkly at the surface of the water. lhere were no ripples at all.
MO Ruyue thought that she was done for, but she realized that she was still alive.
However, the surroundings were a little dark.
If only I had a shlight.
MO Ruyue muttered to herself. Her feet were soft, as if she was stepping on mud. Fortunately, the mud did not stick to her shoes.
As they continued walking forward, the air was filled with an unpleasant smell.
Zhantian, oh Zhantian, can you be brighter? Light up the surroundings!
MO Ruyue said to the Heaven-cleaving Sword in her hand, which was glowing with white light.
Although the Heaven-cleaving Sword was glowing, it was not bright enough. It needed to be brighter.
The Heaven-cleaving Sword seemed to have understood MO Ruyues words, and its body became even brighter.
The surroundings were illuminated.
Its over, its over. Im still in the pythons stomach.
Seeing the situation around her, MO Ruyue felt very ufortable.
If she was in the snakes stomach, would she be expelled as excrement by the snake in the end?
Thinking of this, MO Ruyue felt very depressed.
Squeak
The mountain ghost crawled out of MO Ruyues sleeve. Fortunately, I have you to apany me.
When MO Ruyue saw Hillghost, she felt a little gratified.
It would be best if he could get out of the pythons stomach.
She seemed to have felt something hard under her feet. She looked down and found that it was a skull.
In other words, this wasnt the first time the python had swallowed a person.
Ive only just built my foundation. You wont let me die, right?
MO Ruyue muttered to herself.
She should have the protagonist halo. After all, she even had the system. It would be unreasonable if she did not have the protagonist halo, right?
No matter what, she still had to walk forward.
After all, if he wanted to live on, he had to find hope..
Chapter 771 - 771: This Is Karma
Chapter 771: This Is Karma
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Squeak
Hillghost seemed to have discovered something and made a strange sound.
MO Ruyues eyes were dazzled by something, and her face turned cold. She hastened her steps.
This, this is
Under the illumination of the Heaven-cleaving Sword, the gold emitted a dazzling light.
Its gold! Hahaha Im rich
MO Ruyue couldnt help but burst intoughter.
He squatted down and picked up a piece of gold. The gold was heavy.
It was a blessing in disguise!
She had thought that being swallowed by the python was a very unfortunate thing, but if she had not been swallowed by the python, she would not have been able to find so much gold.
He would not have to worry about money anymore!
Thinking back to how she had cooked and warmed the Demon Lords bed like an old mother for 200 taels of silver.
With this gold, she wouldnt even be interested in two hundred taels.
MO Ruyueughed like crazy.
So much gold, how should I take it away?
Then, MO Ruyue revealed a troubled expression. No matter how much gold she had, she had to be able to take it with her.
Squeak
At this moment, the mountain ghost shouted and ran to MO Ruyue with something in its mouth. At this moment
A storage ring!
MO Ruyue jumped up and down happily,pletely disregarding her image.
This was like having someone pass him a pillow when he wanted to sleep. He was extremely lucky!
A ring that cost 100,000 taels of silver was obtained without any effort! MO Ruyue picked up Hillghost and kissed him passionately. She was worried that there was no ce to store the gold, so she could store It In her storage ring.
A groundhog scream sounded in his heart.
She screamed excitedly.
This was definitely the best of luck.
Although she didnt know who the gold belonged to, as long as no one took it away, it was hers.
The storage ring was also hers.
Perhaps, the bone was the owner of the gold and the storage ring.
MO Ruyue looked at the human bones nearby and said,Brother, you wont be able to spend your gold. Ill spend it for you in the future. If you need money underground, feel free to tell me in my dreams. Ill definitely burn it for you. She looked serious.
After saying that, he put all the gold into the storage ring and then put the storage ring with the red gemstone on his thumb.
It was just right.
Wearing other fingers would make the ring look a little big.
There wasnt much inside the storage ring, only a few pieces of jade. They should be worth some money.
Ghostly, you can eat whatever you want in the future. Im a nouveau riche now.
MO Ruyue said to Hillghost with a smile, her face full of happiness.
Hillghost seemed to understand what was going on.
Then, MO Ruyue stuffed all her other treasures into her storage ring.
The Seven-colored Fire Seed, the Ghost Will, the Saintess Golden Seal, and some banknotes that he had earned in the past were all ced in the storage ring.
As for the Heaven-cleaving Sword, he still had to use it as a shlight.
MO Ruyue continued walking forward to see if there were any more treasures.
The snake belly was much more spacious than she had imagined. Other than the unpleasant smell, everything else was fine. It seems that there are no more treasures.
MO Ruyue said thoughtfully.
Now, he had to find a way out.
After finding so many treasures in the White Pythons stomach, MO Ruyue was really reluctant to cut open the pythons stomach and break out.
At this moment, everyone outside was still looking for the White Python.
Lan Qi slowly opened his eyes. He had already forgotten what had happened.
He only remembered the saintess of the Demon World mocking him.
Eldest Senior Brother, youre finally awake.
Ji Xianfeng heaved a sigh of relief when he saw Lan Qi wake up.
Lan Qi touched his head and realized that it was wrapped in bandages.
What happened to me?
His head hurt. Why didnt he remember that his head was injured?
Cheng Yi, who was wiping his iron sword, said, After you fainted, a white python appeared. The white python was bigger than the previous one. It could blow people away with a single breath. So, you were blown away and fell from the sky to the ground with your head.
After all, hended headfirst.
If it was an ordinary person, their head would have exploded.
Fortunately, Eldest Senior Brother was stubborn and his cultivation was not bad, so he only made a hole.
Eldest Shixiong was really unlucky.
l see. What happened after that? Did you defeat the python? Lan Qi gritted his teeth. His head was still hurting.
Cheng Yi didnt say anything after hearing what Lan Qi said.
We cant defeat the White Python at all, Wen Song said. We cant even defeat more than 20 immortal sect disciples.
Then you just watched the White Python run away?
Lan Qi was a little angry. These people couldnt do anything but spoil things.
Could it be that he wouldnt be entangled with the White Python?
No one spoke.
Lan Qi closed his eyes and did not know anything. Now, he was ming them.
As expected, it was easy to say.
If Lan Qi knew how big the white python was, he probably wouldnt have said that.
She really did not know what Lan Qi was thinking.
Did they really think that they could defeat the White Python?
Lan Qi saw that everyone was silent and felt a trace of awkwardness in the atmosphere, so he continued, What about the people from the Demon Realm?
He still remembered that the Demonic Saintess had called him a good-for-nothing.
Damn woman, how could that woman scold him, the chief senior brother of Xuanling Immortal Sect?
The people of the Demon Realm are all looking for the White Python.
The Demonic Saintess has been swallowed by the White Python.
Lan Qis movements paused. His gaze fell on Zhao Xin and he said,Are you telling the truth?
He couldnt suppress his excitement.
Everyone saw it.
Xin Zhao pursed his lips.
Hearing this, Lan Qiughed loudly and ?karma. This is karma. It deserves to be swallowed by the white python.
Did you see that? Even the heavens are helping us to get rid of the demon worlds saintess.
Lan Qi was ecstatic. He suddenly felt that all the injuries he suffered were worth it.
Senior brother, we still have one more day. We have to speed up.
Ji Xianfeng said. He had been dyed for a day because of the python, so he only had one day left.
When the time was up, they would all have to leave this ce.
Yes, I know. Lets continue to kill demons and monsters.
Lan Qis fighting spirit instantly rose.
Outside
Everyone was looking forward to MO Ruyues sect. The first ce was still MO Ruyue, who had already umted 450 points.
Second ce was Lan Qi with 150 points.
Third ce was Sun Yue, a disciple of the Tomato Immortal Sect with 119 points.
Fourth ce was Qing Chuan, a disciple of the Nine Moons Immortal School, 100 points
The Tomato Sect Leader looked at his disciples name on the list and felt gratified.
When the Sect Leader of the Nine Moons Sect saw the name of the Qingchuan disciple, he felt gratified.
The Sect Master of the Spirit Path did not see the name of his disciple, and his expression was slightly unsightly.
Usually, they were all pretty good. Why wasnt there even a ranking this time?
However, what made everyone curious was the name MO Ruyue.
No sect leader came out to im the identity of the disciple.
Perhaps the sect leader did not remember his disciples name.
Ming Sihan closed his eves to rest. In fact. he was also curious about why MO Chengfeng and the others didnt have anything special.
MO Chengfeng and the others were not much weaker than those disciples of the immortal sects..
Chapter 772 - 772: A Good Opportunity to Kick Someone When They’re Down
Chapter 772: A Good Opportunity to Kick Someone When Theyre Down
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
At this moment, MO Chengfeng and the others were still searching for the white python. They had no intention of fighting with the demons and monsters.
Winning or losing was not that important to them. It could never bepared to the safety of their junior sister.
Have you found the whereabouts of the White Python?
No, I havent. What about you guys?
Not a clue at all.
Everyones expression was a little bad because they did not find the White Python.
MO Chengfeng clenched his fists and said worriedly, Ruyue must be very afraid.
Everyone was silent. Being swallowed by a giant python would definitely be very scary.
Such a huge python had no shadow.
Theres still one more day before the teleportation portal closes. If Ruyue doesnt appear, I wont be able to return.
Jing Xichen said.
They were focused on finding Ruyue now. Nothing else mattered anymore.
Baili Xi thought for a moment and said, Lets split up into seven groups. Everyone, go in different directions and gather here in four hours before the teleportation portal closes.
Perhaps if he went out to look for the demon, he would have a way to save
Ruyue.
Now, only people from the outside coulde in, and those inside could not go out.
They could only leave when the portal was about to close.
Thats the only way.
Ye Yunfeng spoke. Although he did not speak much, he was very worried about Ruyue s safety.
Ye Junlin nodded in agreement.
Then, the seven of them went in seven different directions.
He only hoped that he could find Ruyue.
At this moment, MO Ruyue was spat out by the white python.
The white python felt ufortable because of Hillghost!s body expanding. It had no choice but to spit out MO Ruyue and Hillghost. Outside, MO Ruyue could finally breathe some fresh air.
Great, were finally out.
MO Ruyue opened her arms and looked up at the sun.
She did not know how long she had been in the white pythons stomach. She missed the fresh air outside, the bright sunlight, the breeze in the forest, and the grass and flowers everywhere.
The white python slipped away after it spat at MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue waved her hand at the white python. Little Bai, well meet again.
Mo Ruyue raised her hand and looked at the storage ring on her finger. She couldnt suppress the joy in her heart.
Im really too lucky.
A blessing in disguise.
The ruby was shining in the sunlight.
Hillghost shrunk its body, and its body was covered in mucus.
Squeak squeak.
After calling out a few times, the mountain ghost ran away.
MO Ruyue saw the mountain ghost running away and followed after it.
Ghostly Ghost, where are you going?
Then, Hillghost jumped into a pool and quickly washed the mucus off his body.
As the mountain ghost had blocked most of the mucus, MO Ruyues body was clean and there was not a single drop of mucus on her.
However, after being blown by the wind for a while, the smell on his body disappeared.
You really love cleanliness.
MO Ruyue washed her hands and squatted on the shore as she watched Hillghost rub the fur on her body and rub her cheeks.
It looked very cute.
After Hillghost finished bathing, MO Ruyue prepared to leave the ce with Hillghost.
At this moment, she was in a canyon. There were cliffs on both sides, and the ground was full of gravel.
I wonder how my senior brothers are doing.
Mo Ruyue mumbled to herself. She had no idea where to go.
He could only leave this canyon first.
The portal closed and MO Ruyue felt the summoning of the portal.
All the disciples of the immortal sects went out of the teleportation portal one by one. Everyone was looking forward to their immortal sects having a good ranking.
When everyone saw that the first ce was the Demon World, they were all dumbfounded.
How did the Demon Realm be the first ce?
Lan Qi was dumbfounded when he saw Mo Ruyues name.
MO Ruyue from the Devil Realm was actually the first ce. Did MO Ruyue participate in thispetition?
That woman didnt evene here!
All the disciples of Xuanling Immortal Sect were stunned. They looked at MO Ruyues name in disbelief.
They all knew that Xuanling Immortal Sect once had a female disciple named MO Ruyue. However, this discipleter went to the Demon Realm as a spy.
After that, it was Eldest Senior Brother who kept in touch with MO Ruyue. They didnt have a deep rtionship with MO Ruyue.
Why is MO Ruyues name here?Ji Xianfeng stared at MO Ruyues name with a puzzled expression.
I didnt see MO Ruyue at all. Did I make a mistake?
Ye Xiong found it unbelievable as well.
Zhao Xin seemed to have thought of something and said,Do you think that Saintess is MO Ruyue?
Everyone was stunned at the mention of the Saintess.
Lan Qi gritted his teeth. If that woman is MO Ruyue, why is she going against us? Has she forgotten her identity?
Moreover, MO Ruyue has a lot of potential. She cant be the Saintess of the
Demon Realm. She cant be that powerful.
How could MO Ruyue be so powerful? He had written his name backwards.
It was definitely not MO Ruyue.
If the Saintess isnt MO Ruyue, then who is she? Is there anyone else called Mo Ruyue in the Devil Realm?
Xin Zhao asked.
Anyway, he firmly believed that the Saintess of the Devil World was MO Ruyue. He just didnt know what had happened. MO Ruyue had actually defected to the Devil World.
Moreover, it had be different from before.
Ye Xiong looked at Zhao Xin. I dont think its the Mo Ruyue we know. Maybe she has the same name. Firstly, our Junior Sister MO Ruyue is extremely ugly, while the Devil World Saintess is extremely beautiful. Secondly, our Junior Sisters aptitude is average, while the Devil World Saintesss strength is extraordinary.
You can change your face, but your aptitude wont change. Moreover, your personality isnt the same. In the past, Junior Martial Sister was submissive, but now, MO Ruyue is arrogant and despotic.
Ye Xiongs words were not without reason.
This made Zhao Xin fall into deep thought. Could it really be MO Ruyue who had the same name?
Lan Qi raised his hand and patted Zhao Xins shoulder. He said very confidently,Shidi, dont doubt it. It must be MO Ruyue, who has the same name and surname.
Xin Zhao turned to look at the hand on his shoulder. He didnt want to believe it.
However, he could not refute Ye Xiongs words.
Ming Sihan looked at the disciples of the immortal sects who had appeared one by one, but he did not see his own peopleing out, nor did he see MO Ruyue.
She couldnt help but feel a little worried.
After a long time, MO Chengfeng and the others came out.
However, MO Ruyue was nowhere to be seen.
Ming Sihan felt that something was wrong and quickly flew down. Hended in front of MO Chengfeng and the others and said,Wheres Ruyue? Arent you with Ruyue?
MO Chengfeng knelt down on one knee towards Ming Sihan and said guiltily, Demon Lord, this subordinate deserves to die, there is no protection, such as Yue.
Then. MO Chengfeng recounted how MO Ruyue was swallowed by the white
python.
The other people knelt down one after another. They didnt protect their Junior Sister.
The portal would close in fifteen minutes.
Ming Sihan didnt think too much and directly entered the portal.
Demon Venerable! MO Chengfengs eyes widened. The Demon Venerable had actually barged into the teleportation portal.
The sect leaders on the seats also stood up when they saw this.
There were even some sect leaders who hurriedly said to Ling
Shoumo,Xuanling Sect Leader, now is the best time to close the portal. Once the portal is closed, the demon wont be able toe out.
This was definitely a good opportunity to kick someone when they were down..
Chapter 773 - 773: Great Contribution
Chapter 773: Great Contribution
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
As a righteous sect, how can you do such a thing?
Xing Lan couldnt help but ask. This demon actually entered the teleportation portal for a saintess.
It was quite touching.
After all, the teleportation portal could only be opened from the outside.
If no one opened it from the outside, the Demon Lord could only be locked inside.
As righteous people, we should uphold justice and kill the Demon Venerable.
Everyone was arguing over this matter. Some people felt that this was a great opportunity to get rid of the Demon Lord.
However, some people felt that this way of doing things did not look like a well-known brand.
In the end, everyones gaze fell on Ling Shoumo. This mans cultivation was the highest here, so he should be the one to make the decision.
Master Xuanling, this is a once-in-a-lifetime opportunity. If you miss this opportunity, there wont be any other opportunities!
Master Xuanling, I dont think this is appropriate. Its really taking advantage of others when theyre in danger. Were a righteous sect, so how can we take advantage of others when theyre in danger?
At this moment, Ling Shoumos expression was calm and emotionless.
No one knew what this man was thinking.
Ling Shoumo ignored the discussions of the people around him and looked at the portal.
He wanted to know who MO Ruyue was.
Was she really the Saintess of the Demon World?
When everyone saw that Ling Shoumo didnt react, some were happy while others were sad.
At this moment, Ling Shoumo actually dropped the ball.
At this moment, MO Ruyue was rushing towards the exit.
Soon, she saw a familiar figure.
She stopped in her tracks and shouted, Master!
Ming Sihan heard a crisp voice and looked down. He saw MO Ruyues figure at first nce.
He flew towards MO Ruyue with an unconcealed look of concern on his face.
Are you alright?
Of course Im fine. Whats wrong?
MO Ruyue shook her head. In the future, she would no longer have to work so hard as a lowly worker.
She was rich now, and her storage ring was filled with gold.
Yes, master, arent you outside? Why are you here?
The smile on MO Ruyues face gradually faded, and she frowned slightly.
Seeing that MO Ruyue was safe and sound, Ming Sihan heaved a sigh of relief.
Was he already so concerned about this woman in front of him?
Unknowingly, he seemed to be more and more deeply influenced by this woman.
Lets go, Ill bring you out. The teleportation portal is about to close. As he spoke, Ming Sihan wrapped his arms around MO Ruyues waist.
Her waist was so slender that it seemed like it could break with just a little force.
The Demon Realm didnt give you food?
It was a little annoying to make herself so thin and covered in bones.
In the future, he had to let this woman eat more.
Otherwise, the wind would blow her away.
MO Ruyue didnt know what Ming Sihan meant.
There was food to eat in the Demon Realm, but the food in the Demon Realm was not ordinary.
Ming Sihan looked away and brought MO Ruyue out of the portal the moment it closed.
He was just a second away from getting out.
Outside, the crowd quieted down.
MO Chengfeng and the others finally heaved a sigh of relief when they saw the Demon bring MO Ruyue out.
The demon brought Ru Yue out.
The demon did not care about his own safety and personally rescued Ruyue from the trial.
If the Demon Venerable and Ru Yue were trapped in the trial ground today, the immortal sects would definitely join forces to tten the Demon Realm.
The sect leader on the sect leaders seat sighed when he saw the Demon Venerablee out.
However, there were two meanings to these sighs. One was that they were regretful that they had missed a good opportunity to get rid of the Demon Lord.
One was that he was relieved that the Demon Venerable hade out.
It was not that he was biased towards the Demon Venerable, but he felt that the trial ground could trap the Demon Venerable for a while, but it could not trap the Demon Venerable for a lifetime. There was no need to take advantage of his predicament at this time and hit him when he was down.
Of course, only a minority thought so,
Most people still hoped that the Demon Lord would be trapped in the trial grounds.
Junior Sister Ruyue.
Junior Sister Ruyue, are you alright?
Everyone crowded around MO Ruyue and nervously examined her.
MO Ruyue shook her head. Im sorry for making Senior Brothers worry. Im fine.
As she spoke, she even walked around to reassure her senior brothers. She was in such a good state.
Xia Zhixing stared at MO Ruyue, not daring to blink, afraid that MO Ruyue would disappear if she blinked.
Junior Sister, werent you swallowed by the White Python?
What happened after that? It just came out of the White Pythons stomach? Xia Zhixing asked.
The other senior brothers also wanted to hear about the cause of the matter.
Thanks to the mountain ghost, if its not the mountain ghost, I still really dont know how to get out of the white pythons stomach.
MO Ruyue recalled the past events and did not feel much fear.
The mountain ghost whose name was called poked its round and furry little head out of MO Ruyues sleeve.
Hillghost scratched his head in embarrassment.
Saving its master was what it should do.
When he was in danger, it was always his master who protected him. Now that its master was in danger, it naturally had to help its master.
l really didnt dote on Mountain Ghost for nothing.
MO Chengfeng said.
After Ming Sihan put MO Ruyue down, he returned to the seat of the sect leader.
He did not look at MO Ruyue. It was not because he did not want to see her, but because his heartbeat was in a mess.
That damned l,voman, what kind of bewitching drug did she put on him? Why was he so addicted to it?
Junior Sister, look, were actually ranked first.
Xia Zhixing pointed at the leaderboard.
Ruyue was the main reason why they were able to get first ce this time.
Ruyue was a great contributor.
Upon hearing this, MO Ruyue followed the direction that Xia Zhixing pointed at and looked at the leaderboard. She was shocked when she saw it.
His name was written on the first spot, which was particrly eye-catching.
He was finished. He never expected that his name could actually be read.
She had never thought of this.
Her identity was probably going to be exposed.
MO Ruyues expression turned grave.
However, she seemed to have thought of something.
As long as she didnt admit that she was from the Xuanling Immortal Sect, it would be fine. Anyway, her current appearance was very different from before.
Thinking of this, MO Ruyue felt more at ease.
It was tine as long as he refused to admit it.
Other than that, she couldnt think of any other way.
He braced himself and walked forward step by step.
MO Ruyue thought to herself. She looked calm, but her heart was already surging.
Ling Shoumo stared at MO Ruyue tightly, as if he wanted to see something from this womans face.
However, this woman did not react at all. It was as if she did not know him at all.
Lan Qi and the others stared at MO Ruyue.
Was this woman MO Ruyue from their immortal sect or MO Ruyue from the Demon Realm?
They couldnt make up their minds.
This was because the MO Ruyue of the past and the current MO Ruyue had different personalities and appearances.
Moreover, he was very unfamiliar with them.
Therefore, they were very puzzled..
Chapter 774 - 774: An Unkillable Cockroach
Chapter 774: An Unkible Cockroach
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Lan Qi clenched his fists behind his back.
The first round of thepetition ended just like that. The September Sect Leader stood on the stage and looked at the results on the rankings at a nce. He really did not want to say anything.
The first ce was not a disciple of their immortal sect, but MO Ruyue, the Saintess of the Demon World.
This Saintess seemed to have just broken through to the Qi Refinement realm.
How could a mere Foundation Building disciple leave the other Foundation Building disciples far behind?
This was very puzzling.
He didnt know why.
He didnt believe that this person had relied on her own strength to get first ce.
However, he had no evidence to prove that the Saintess had cheated to get first ce.
Just thinking about it made him angry.
The first round of the trial has ended. I believe everyone has seen the results.
I wont announce them one by one.
Elder September did not want to praise the first ce.
Because the first ce did not belong to any immortal sect disciple, there was nothing to praise.
He really couldnt bring himself to praise the Demon Realm.
Seeing people from the Demon Realm made him angry.
Ming Sihan frowned slightly and flew onto the stage.
Demon, what do you want to do?
The September Sect Leader looked at the man in front of him and stuttered.
She waspletely frightened by the mans imposing manner.
When he realized that there were so many disciples looking at him, he could not be scared, so he forced himself to hold on.
He looked very calm on the surface, but his tone had betrayed him.
Why not? Looking down on our Demon Realm? Or do you feel embarrassed because you are not ranked?
Ming Sihans words were so harsh that he almost did not give the leader of the Nine Moon Sect any face.
The sect leader of the Nine Moon Sect was seen to be in a state of shock, and his hands in his wide sleeves had already clenched into fists.
Right now, he was extremely furious. He had been humiliated by this demon.
Ming Sihan didnt show any politeness at all. He walked towards the center, wearing a ck robe. His silver-white hair was elegant and beautiful, his facial features were deep and charming, and his dark red eyes were attractive.
MO Ruyue stared at Sihan, thinking that this man was a damned demon.
She looked at the female disciples from the other immortal sects, who were staring at Ming Sihan without blinking.
Although she knew that Ming Sihan was the demon lord of the demon world, she was still impressed by his devilish looks.
Flower Addict!
MO Ruyue muttered in a low voice. She felt a little upset as she felt that her things were being peeked at by others.
The September Sect Leader looked at the man riding on his head and pooping. He snorted and reminded,This is the territory of the immortal sect, not the territory of your demon world.
Did this guy know that he was in someone elses territory?
Ming Sihan revealed a thoughtful expression and said ?right. This isnt the territory of the Demon Realm. Why dont I upy this ce after this?
You
The Sect Leader of the September Sect was angered by Ming Si Hans shameless words.
How thick- skinned.
He actually wanted to make Ethereal Mountain the territory of the Demon Realm.
What about me? Was my suggestion too good?
Ming Sihans lips curved into a faint smile.
The Sect Leader of the September Moon Sect was directly scolded by Ming Sihan for being shameless.
l can be even more shameless.
Ming Sihan was simply too infuriating.
Then, he looked in MO Ruyues direction, and his originally calm heart started to throb.
However, he was still very calm.
l hereby announce that the first ce winner of the trialpetition is MO
Ruyue, the Saintess of the Demon World
He was only responsible for announcing the first ce. As for the second-ranked Xuanling Immortal Sect and the third-ranked Spirit Path Immortal Sect, they had nothing to do with him.
After the announcement, Ming Sihan swaggered away with a cool back view.
He seemed to have done something amazing. The Demon Lord is so handsome!
Demon Venerable is so domineering. 1 like it.
The demon lord is good or bad. I like him.
Some of the female disciples could no longer control their own emotions and say what they liked.
Although the Demon Commander was loathed by others, it could not resist the fact that the Demon Commander was really abnormally handsome.
MO Ruyue snorted inwardly when she heard those voices.
Cant these women stand firm? The Demon Venerable was from the Demon Realm and was in opposition to the immortal sect.
Now, she actually fell for the Demon Venerable. If her master knew about this, she would be angered to death.
In fact, other than women, there were also male disciples who were charmed by Ming Sihan.
This made MO Ruyue feel ufortable.
These men should give up. Even if Ming Sihan was gay, he was still a couple with the Godly Doctor He Xi!
MO Ruyue thought to herself.
Seeing that Ming Sihan had left, the leader of the September Sect went back on stage and cursed in his heart.
Next, the second round of thepetition was announced.
Next is the second round of thepetition. Thepetition will stop at a certain point.
Do you remember the rules of thepetition?
The Sect Leader of the Nine Moon Sect shouted loudly. He red at MO Ruyue with a strange expression.
It was to warn the people of the demon world to hurt people during thepetition.
MO Ruyue crossed her arms and snorted coldly.
Here, the people are really viins.
After that, it was time to draw lots to match the opponents. There were about 500 disciples participating in thepetition, which showed how many people there were in the entire venue.
MO Ruyue casually grabbed a hand and matched it with a nobody.
When faced with a nobody, the other party was in the Aura Refining Stage while MO Ruyue was in the Foundation Building Stage.
Youre at the foundation establishment stage. You should give in to me!
The other party made a request.
He looked at MO Ruyue seriously.
Are you making a request? MO Ruyue asked with a smile.
Youre a Foundation Establishment Cultivator, so you should give in to me. If you dont give in to me, how can you be fair?
MO Ruyue was amused by the other partys words.
This was the first time he had seen such a person.
It was a ssic case of me being weak and me being reasonable.
MO Ruyue smiled mockingly, crossed her arms, and said carelessly,l dont care if youre fair or not, as long as I dont break the rules. If youre scared, you can admit defeat.
You
The man was so angry that he was speechless. He bit his lip and red at MO
Ruyue.
Cut the crap. Lets begin.
MO Ruyue directly used her Ghost Will to deal with a Qi Refiner. She did not need to use two swords or a brick.
She had no other low-level weapons other than the ghost thoughts.
Then, she swept out a whirlwind and a sword wind attacked that person.
In an instant, the man was knocked out. MO Ruyue remembered the rules of thepetition and did not hit him again.
What if he identally killed someone?
The man stood up again after being knocked down.
I will never admit defeat!
MO Ruyues mouth twitched.Good heavens, is he a cockroach that cant be killed?
This kind of opponent was more difficult to deal with.
He was hit by MO Ruyue again and again, but he stood up again and again.
In the end, MO Ruyue was annoyed.
The others had already finished their matches, leaving only her and this unkible cockroach entangled here.
He had never seen such a troublesome fellow. He was very annoying!
This fellow stood up again and again.
Admit defeat. Everyone has finishedpeting. Do you think you can touch me?
MO Ruyue tried her best to console him.
It would be great if he admitted defeat earlier and ended the match earlier.
l cant
The man stood up and then fell to the ground.
It wasnt because he was hurt by MO Ruyue, but because he had run out of strength.
His limbs were weak, and he couldnt even lift the sword in his hand..
Chapter 775 - 775: Your Demon World Won’t Be Arrogant for Long
Chapter 775: Your Demon World Wont Be Arrogant for Long
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
You are wasting my precious time. Do you believe that I will kill you after the match?
MO Ruyue said with a vicious look.
He clearly couldnt win, but he still refused to admit defeat.
He wanted to save face and suffer.
When the sect master saw this scene, he said to the other disciples,Everyone must learn this tenacious spirit from this disciple. You must never admit defeat to the darkness!
When MO Ruyue heard this, her head was full of question marks.
The disciple who was her opponent seemed to have been encouraged and actually stood up again.
I will never admit defeat to the dark and my enemies.
The man charged at MO Ruyue again, but MO Ruyue dodged him easily.
Did he really think of himself as the male lead of an anime? He clearly had no strength left, but he stood up just because of some words and defeated his opponent who had a great disparity in strength?
That was a hot-blooded anime. It was useless against her protagonist halo!
The man fell to the ground. He had no strength left and fainted.
He was tortured by himself until he copsed.
At this moment, the sky was already dark.
It was because this man had wasted too much time fighting MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue yawned. Thepetition has finally ended.
What a waste of time.
If it wasnt for the rules of thepetition, the man would have died.
Ruyue, how do you feel?
A few Senior Brothers surrounded MO Ruyue and asked about her well-being.
Of course, they genuinely wanted to care for MO Ruyue. Ruyue must be tired after being dragged out by a lunatic for so long.
Poor Ruyue.
MO Ruyue sighed and said,Im fine. Im just a little tired.
He had never met such a speechless person.
The September Sect Leader saw that the sky was getting darker and darker. He walked up the stage and said,Its alreadyte, so its not suitable to continue thepetition. Well continue tomorrow. Everyone, go and rest.
Yes.
Everyone acknowledged that they could finally rest.
Thepetition could have ended in one day, but MO Ruyue had been fighting with an immortal sect disciple for a long time, which had dyed everyones time.
All the disciples of the immortal sects stayed in Ethereal Mountain. Most of them sat on the ground and meditated.
There was no bed here, so he could only rest by meditating.
The people from Xuanling Immortal Sect were all staring at MO Ruyue because they were really curious whether MO Ruyue was their former junior sister or the Demon World Saintess who had the same name as their former junior sister.
Everyone naturally paid more attention to MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue was chatting andughing with her Senior Brothers, and the atmosphere was very good.
MO Ruyue of Xuanling Immortal Sect was a loner, so it was impossible for her to be so cheerful.
Could it really be the MO Ruyue with the same name?
Moreover, MO Ruyues cultivation base was at the Foundation Building realm. She was many times stronger than MO Ruyue, who was only at the Qi Refining realm.
MO Ruyue nced at the crowd and frowned. Dont these guys need to eat?
Other than those sect leaders who might not need to eat, the others need to eat more or less.
Jing Xichen looked at the other disciples of the immortal sect and saw that they were all meditating and resting with their eyes closed.
Meditation was a good way to recover energy. Of course, it was still slightly inferior to sleeping.
For people with low cultivation, it was easier to recover energy by sleeping. However, there were no beds here, so it was easy to catch a cold while sleeping.
Ethereal Mountain was higher in altitude, so the temperature was naturally colder than the foot of the mountain.
Many people were shivering from the cold.
Ignore them. Lets start a fire and cook.
MO Ruyue suggested. She was already hungry. It was better to eat something to keep warm at night.
Then Ill go and pick up the firewood.
Ye Junlin automatically requested to be ced on the throne. He was very good at this kind of thing.
He really wanted to try Ruyues cooking again. It had been a long time since he had tasted Ruyues cooking.
Lets go together. Ye Yunfeng continued.
Yes.
Ye Junlin replied.
The two of them turned around and left to collect firewood.
Second Senior Brother and I will go look for food. Jing Xichen suggested as he nced at Baili Xijian.
Alright. Baili Xijian responded.
MO Ruyue stared at the two of them, her eyes flickering. She seemed to have sensed something fishy. Had the two of them be inseparable?
Baili Xi noticed the strange look in MO Ruyues eyes and said seriously,The two of us will find more food. This forced exnation
MO Ruyue whispered.
Jing Xichen couldnt help butugh when he saw this. What was Ruyue thinking?
In order to stop MO Ruyue from letting her imagination run wild, he said to Qi Shaoyu and Xia Zhixing,You twoe together.
Alright.
Sure.
Xia Zhixing and Qi Yu agreed.
One isnt enough, you want two?
MO Ruyues facial features contorted in disbelief.
..Jing Xichen was speechless.
Ruyues imagination was really big. She could think of anything.
However, he was toozy to exin anything.
Now, only MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng were left.
Ruyue, Im going to the Demon Lords ce, MO Chengfeng said to MO Ruyue.
Okay, go ahead. Ill wait here for you guys toe back.
The main reason was to take up space here so that others would not take it up.
Because their ce was in a corner, it was just enough to block the wind.
MO Ruyue yawned after her Senior Brothers left.
It was a pity that there was no bed here. Otherwise, he could sleep here.
The bright moon hung in the sky, and the stars twinkled in the sky.
It was just a little cold.
At this moment, a figure appeared in front of MO Ruyue. It was Lan Qi.
MO Ruyues expression did not change, and she remained calm.
She felt that she was really an expert at acting.
Whats the matter?
There was a hint of arrogance in her tone, and her eyes were full of disdain.
Lan Qi stared at MO Ruyue. This woman was probably not the MO Ruyue he knew.
Because the MO Ruyue he knew was weak and cowardly, and her eyes would not show any disdain.
How could that stupid woman MO Ruyue despise him?
You are the Saintess of the Demon World?
Lan Qi asked.
The woman in front of him was so much prettier than MO Ruyue.
The Saintess of the Demon Realm was exactly as MO Ruyue had described. She was indeed a beauty that could topple cities and countries.
Thats right. Whats the matter?
MO Ruyue asked again. She really did not want to face Lan Qi.
She was afraid that if this guy said a few more words in front of her senior brothers, she would be exposed.
Fortunately, his senior brothers were all here.
He had to chase Lan Qi away.
Is there a woman called MO Ruyue in your Demon Realm?
Lan Qi asked straightforwardly.
MO Ruyue didnt know how to answer this question.
Why arent you saying anything?
Lan Qi narrowed his eyes. Could this woman really have some secret?
He didnt believe that the Saintess of the Devil World in front of him was the
MO Ruyue he knew.
Why should I answer you? Who are you?
MO Ruyue said arrogantly.
What are you so arrogant for? Your Demon Realm wont be arrogant for long!
Lan Qi snorted and left.
It seemed that this woman really wasnt MO Ruyue.
She was not the MO Ruyue he knew.
That MO Ruyue dared not be so arrogant.
Lan Qi returned to his territory.
Ji Xianfeng hurriedly asked,Eldest Senior Brother Brother, how is it?
That woman isnt Junior Sister MO Ruyue. Junior Sister MO Ruyue isnt that arrogant.
Lan Qi sighed and continued to meditate..
Chapter 776 - 776: Fragrant Barbecue
Chapter 776 - 776: Fragrant Barbecue
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Chen Yuluo, who was standing at the side, felt a little upset when she saw that everyone was concerned about the Demonic Saintess.
He frowned.
Senior Brother Six, my hand hurts.
Chen Yuluos sweet voice sounded, trying to attract the attention of the other senior brothers.
When Ye Xiong heard Chen Yuluos voice, he hurried to her side and
said,Junior Sister, where does your hand hurt?
Here, the ce bitten by the python still hurts.
Her voice sessfully attracted the attention of the others, which made Chen Yuluo heave a sigh of relief.
What MO Ruyue? She was the Little Junior Sister now. Everyone should be concerned about her.
MO Ruyue did not care about Lan Qis movements as she watched MO Chengfeng return.
Ruyue, why did that fellowe over just now?
MO Chengfeng shot a nce at Lan Qi, a hint of displeasure in his eyes.
When he saw Lan Qi stopping here, he hurried over after he finished exining things to the demon.
Lan Qi had just left.
She didnt know what Lan Qi had said to Ruyue.
Nothing. he just asked who I am. Of course. Im the Saintess of the Demon World.
MO Ruyue replied vaguely. She did not want to tell the truth.
Otherwise, it would be easy to expose his identity.
It was really risky toe here this time.
She hoped that her identity wouldnt be exposed. She didnt want to be a human pig.
Upon hearing MO Ruyues words, MO Chengfeng didnt ask any further.
At this time, Ye Junlin and Ye Yunfeng brought back a lot of firewood.
Jing Xichen, Baili Xijian, Qi Shaoyu, and Xia Zhixing brought back food.
Jing Xichen and Baili Xijian brought wild fruits, while Xia Zhixing and Qi Shaoyu brought fish and wild goats.
Seeing the goat, MO Ruyue started salivating. This time, there was mutton to eat.
If only there was an iron pot. Perhaps he could even make a mutton hotpot.
It was a pity that there was no iron pot here. It was not bad to eat some roasted mutton.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin looked at each other. Roasted mutton, that was possible.
The disciples of the other immortal sects looked over.
What are they doing?
l think hes preparing something to eat!
Are you going to eat grilled fish and mutton?
It looks like it, but the fish and mutton they roast must be terrible. Ive roasted them before, so 1 might as well not eat them.
Yeah, usually in the wild, Id rather eat wild fruits than roast something myself. The food that I roast is really too disgusting.
Thats right, everyone has been through it, but the people of the Demon Realm dont understand.
The disciples of the immortal sect discussed animatedly.
Should we remind them?
Whats there to remind them? Isnt it good to just look at them like this? Lets see how they make a fool of themselves when the timees.
Yes, yes, Im ready to watch a good show.
Sigh, its obvious that the people of the Demon Realmck experience in the wild. They actually roast fish and sheep.
MO Ruyue had naturally heard the rumors, but she did not take them to heart.
Let them enjoy the show.
When Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin heard those voices, they felt that those immortal sect disciples were looking down on them.
If he didnt know how to barbecue, he would think that others didnt know how to barbecue either.
It was trulyughable.
He would let Ruyue beat their earster.
Senior Brother MO, do you still have wine on you?
Yes, there is.
MO Chengfeng nodded his head. The wine he had left behind at the Divine Wind Restaurant was all here.
Was it going toe in handy now?
He took out the wine.
l need to use some to remove the fishy smell. You can warm up the rest and drink some to warm up your bodies. The temperature is too low at night. MO Ruyue said methodically.
When the fire started burning, they felt warm on their side and instantly felt less cold than before.
Mo Ruyue held the knife and did the work.
The Senior Brothers would help out if they could, and those who couldnt, just quietly watched MO Ruyues clean operation.
Senior Martial Brothers Ye, why are you so skilled?
Jing Xichen asked. Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin could almost understand what Ruyue wanted to do.
The corners of Ye Junlins mouth curled up into a mysterious smile. We have to start from the matter of inviting the divine doctor He spoke frankly and confidently about what had happened before.
Everyone finally understood.
His eyes were filled with envy.
MO Ruyue looked at the sizzling mutton and said regretfully,The only w is that we dont have enough ingredients. Otherwise, the roasted meat would be even more fragrant.
Hillghost couldnt help but lick his lips.
Ye Yunfeng silently took out some materials from his storage ring.
Do you need these?
Senior brother, this
MO Ruyue stared at the materials in front of her with a shocked expression.
l casually prepared some after I went backst time.
Ye Yunfeng was somewhat embarrassed.
Could Ruyue not stare at him? It was too awkward.
Senior Brother, I love you to death.
MO Ruyue only said something to express her affection, but it was not the kind of love between a man and a woman.
However, her words immediately caused the other senior brothers to fall silent.
Ye Yunfengs face was a little red. The orange fire reflected on Ye Yunfengs face, and it was impossible to see that his face had actually turned red.
The atmosphere was tense and awkward.
MO Ruyue didnt think too much about it. Instead, she continued to spread the seasoning on the mutton and fish.
With the addition of seasoning, the air was filled with the smell of barbecue.
This made the disciples of the immortal sects next door drool.
Releasing poison in the middle of the night was a great sin.
Moreover, everyone was so hungry. They tried their best to bear the hunger, but in the end, there were people beside them who had no conscience and were eating delicious food. They even ate so happily.
Why is the food they made so fragrant? And theres no burnt smell.
This isnt normal.
It smells so good. Im so hungry.
The entire Misty Mountain was filled with the smell of roasted meat.
All the disciples of the immortal sects looked at MO Ruyue with eager eyes.
It didnt smell bad or burnt like they had imagined. The smell of roasted meat made them swallow their saliva.
How could there be such fragrant roasted meat in this world?
Everyone was already very hungry, but now, they had to smell the smell of roasted meat and watch others eat it inrge mouthfuls.
This was no less than a form of torture for the hungry.
It smells so good. Im so hungry.
Dont say anymore. Quickly use something to block your nose. That might make you feel better.
Listen, my stomach is already rumbling.
Those immortal sect disciples who had nothing to eat felt dizzy.
As for the immortal sect disciples who had food to eat, they instantly felt that the buns in their hands were fragrant.
How could the ice-cold steamed bunspare to the hot and fragrant roasted
meat(
It would be great if the people of the demon world gave me some food. Are you crazy? He actually wanted to ask the people of the Demon Realm for food.
Dont you want to eat their roasted meat? Anyway, Im already hungry.
The sect master and the others had profound cultivation levels, so they didnt need to eat and wouldnt feel hungry.
However, they were different. They were still made of flesh and blood. They were like iron rice, iron steel. If they didnt eat, they would be hungry.
Originally, they could survive by meditating, but with such a strong temptation beside them, they were in no mood to meditate. After meditating for a while, his saliva kept secreting..
Chapter 777 - 777: Picking Fish Bones
Chapter 777 - 777: Picking Fish Bones
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue was fanning herself with a banana leaf, asionally sending the smell of roasted meat to the disciples.
When the disciples of the immortal sect smelled the fragrance, their eyes turned green with hunger.
She was simply killing people.
Seeing that the roasted meat was almost done, MO Ruyue hurriedly distributed the meat to her Senior Brothers.
He also left a leg for Hillghost.
Junior Sister, your craftsmanship is really amazing.
Baili Xijian gave him a thumbs up. It was rare for him to praise someones culinary skills.
It was really delicious.
The mutton was roasted until it was crispy on the outside and tender on the inside, The taste was first-ss.
She had never eaten such delicious mutton before.
You guys eat more.
MO Ruyue said with a smile.
She also ate the mutton without any hesitation.
As expected, the roasted mutton with seasoning seemed to taste even better. She was delighted to eat it.
Not everyone liked to eat mutton. Some people would think that the taste of mutton was perfect, while others would think that the taste of mutton was very strong. When they ate it, a strange feeling rushed to the top of their heads.
MO Ruyue liked mutton. She didnt dislike it, nor did she particrly like it. It was fine as long as it was edible.
The key was that this feeling of eating meat in big mouthfuls was refreshing.
These are all roasted. Ill bring some over to the Demon Venerable.
MO Ruyue had already noticed the man in the distance, and she kept ncing over.
However, when she looked over, the man happened to shift his gaze elsewhere.
MO Chengfeng thought for a moment and said, Ill bring it to the Demon
Lord.
Its fine. Senior Brother, just sit here and eat. Ill go over.
She had other motives for going there.
Wiping her mouth, Ru Yue took amb leg and a grilled fish and walked over to the Demon Venerable.
Ming Sihan looked at MO Ruyue and snorted in his heart.
Did she finally think of him at this time?
He arrogantly averted his gaze and found Ling Shoumo staring in MO Ruyue i s direction. He frowned and scolded in a low voice,What are you looking at?
Thats my disciple.
This guy couldnt be coveting his disciple, right?
Ling Shoumo looked away and nced at Ming Sihan. He said slowly, She looks like one of my disciples.
Ha, how can you have such a smart and beautiful disciple?
Good heavens, he was indeed coveting his disciple.
That damned Ling Shoumo, he could have coveted anyone but his disciple.
MO Ruyue came to the side of the man, but she still didnt know what had happened.
She ced the roastedmb leg and fish on the table and said considerately, Master, look at how good I am to you. I brought you roastedmb and grilled
fish.
To think that you can still remember me.
Ming Sihan was a little angry. He had ignored him for long. and only now did he think of him.
This woman was so heartless.
MO Ruyue was speechless. This man seemed to be angry.
Master is always in my heart. 1 dont need to think about him at all.
Is that so?
Hearing those sweet words, Ming Sihan felt as sweet as honey.
This womans words were quite pleasant to the ears.
Of course. Didnt this disciple bring food to Master?
As she spoke, MO Ruyue nced at Ling Shoumo who was next door.
Ming Sihan only took a nce, but he noticed it.
His originally good mood suddenly turned sour.
Master, please eat.
MO Ruyue said thoughtfully.
Ming Sihan leaned back in his chair and said with disdain,Are you going to let me personally handle such a greasy thing?
Hearing Ming Sihans words, MO Ruyue turned to his side and took out a dagger.
Of course I wont let Master do it himself. Ill give you a piece of meat.
He skillfully peeled off the meat from themb leg bit by bit.
Then, she fed it to Ming Sihan.
Master, eat meat.
Ming Sihan opened his mouth slightly and ate a little.
This scene made the sect master of the immortal sect beside him reveal an envious look. Although they didnt need to eat to fill their stomachs, the roasted meat smelled too fragrant.
She was also very envious of Ming Sihan, who could eat anything just by opening his mouth.
His beautiful disciple was serving him at the side.
They had never received such treatment.
Although he was the sect master of an immortal sect, he basically maintained a certain distance from his disciples.
If they were too close, they would feel that they did not have much prestige.
MO Ruyue did everything she could to let Ling Shoumo take a good look.
From now on, she would only serve the Demon Lord.
As for Ling Shoumo, he would get as far away as possible and never want to see this man again.
Master, is it delicious?
MO Ruyue asked coquettishly.
Looking at MO Ruyues charming appearance, Ming Sihan only wanted to hide this woman in the demon world.
She did not want other men to see this womans coquettishness.
An inexplicable possessiveness grew in his heart, and this desire was very strong.
MO Ruyue was his woman!
Its delicious. Everything I make is delicious.
Ming Sihans dark red eyes darkened, and his voice became hoarse and low.
Then, MO Ruyue continued to feed the mutton to Ming Sihan.
Ming Sihan took the mutton and fed it to MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue was stunned by this scene.
Why did the demon suddenly feed her?
She forgot how she should react and stood rooted to the ground.
She was supposed to feed the devil, but now it was the other way around. The devil wanted to feed her.
MO Ruyue didnt know if she should open her mouth.
Ming Sihans hand froze in the air. Why didnt this woman react at all?
Master, arent you going to eat?
After a long while, MO Ruyue came back to her senses with a slightly awkward expression.
Master is already full.
Ming Sihan said in a low voice.
Actually, he didnt need to eat at all. However, he only ate a little because it was made by MO Ruyue herself.
Seeing that MO Ruyue kept feeding him, he wanted to feed her too.
Wasnt it better to feed each other?
Oh. MO Ruyue heaved a sigh of relief. Otherwise, it would have been too awkward.
He looked at the grilled fish beside him and said regretfully,But Master hasnt eaten grilled fish yet.
Then Ill give it to you.
Ming Sihan nced at the half grilled fish and reached out his hand to MO
Ruyue.
Master, whats wrong? Give me the dagger.
Oh, oh
MO Ruyue handed the dagger to Ming Sihan.
The two of them were here. You eat a little, I eat a little.
The others were so envious that they were drooling.
Ling Shoumos gaze never left MO Ruyue.
This woman should be MO Ruyue from Xuanling Sect. He wasnt sure.
Because he had never looked at this woman in the eye.
He didnt even remember what this woman looked like.
Ming Sihan used the dagger in his hand to remove the bones from the fish on the table. His movements were so skillful that it made ones heart ache.
He seemed to know every thorn of the fish very well.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but feel puzzled. When did the Demon Lord learn the ability to pick fish bones?
Moreover, she was very sure that this was definitely not the first time Ming Sihan had picked fish bones.
Master, youre so skilled at picking fish bones. MO Ruyue praised.
Ming Sihan only smiled and didnt say anything else. After a while, Ming Sihan picked all the bones from the fish.
Eat.
Thank you, Master.
MO Ruyue didnt stand on ceremony. She picked up the fish and started eating. Because she found it troublesome to pick the bones, she had not eaten fish before.
Now that someone had picked out all the stingers, she definitely couldnt miss such a good grilled fish.
Seeing MO Ruyue eating the grilled fish, Ming Sihan felt a sense of aplishment.
He no longer paid attention to the gazes of the people around him..
Chapter 778 - 778: You Dare to Betray Me?
Chapter 778 - 778: You Dare to Betray Me?
After finishing the grilled fish, MO Ruyue prepared to leave. This was the Sect Masters resting ce, so she could not stay here.
In fact, the ce where the sect leader was located had an additional windbreaker, table, and chair.
Ming Sihan watched MO Ruyue leave.
Then, he nced at Ling Shoumo beside him and said faintly, It seems that the Xuanling Sect Master is very interested in my disciple,
Its alright. Ling Shoumo closed his eyes.
He would definitely get to the bottom of this.
MO Ruyue returned to her senior brothers side, which was warmer than Ming Sihans side.
Because there was a bonfire here, and the senior brothers would add firewood from time to time, the surroundings were warm.
Several of the immortal sect disciples next door were so hungry that they fainted.
It wasnt that they couldnt endure hunger, but there was someone beside them who was affecting them, so they naturally couldnt endure hunger.
Cold and hungry, this night was destined to be difficult for them.
Chen Yuluo looked enviously at the bonfire on MO Ruyues side and couldnt help but shout, Senior Brother, Im so cold.
Everyone is very cold. Xin Zhao pursed his lips. He felt a little cold himself. He didnt expect the temperature on the mountain top to be so low.
It was so cold that it made people tremble.
He really did not have the courage to take off his clothes for Chen Yuluo to wear.
If his clothes were left behind by Chen Yu, he would be cold too.
There was still a game tomorrow, and he did not want to y the hero at this juncture.
He had to conserve his strength for tomorrows game.
Chen Yuluo looked at her senior brothers who were not willing to take off their clothes for her to wear. She was very angry, but there was nothing she could do.
Why dont we go and pick up some firewood to make a fire? she suggested.
This should be enough, right?
Do we have to do whatever they do?Lan Qi said coldly. He hated Chen Yuluos thoughts.
This woman only knew how to drag them down.
Chen Yuluos heart was filled with grievances. She was shivering in the cold wind. But Im really cold.
Even if its very cold, hold it in. Were Xuanling Sect disciples after all. How can we let those people from the Wind Demon Realm? Lan Qi said with a straight face.
He would not imitate those people from the Demon Realm.
Hearing Lan Qis words, Chen Yuluo almost cried.
This was the first time he felt that Lan Qi was so annoying. His face was really more important than his life.
He wanted to save face and suffer.
Ye Xiong stood up and said, Junior Sister, wait here. Ill go and get some firewood. Lets start a fire.
Alright, Sixth Senior Brother.
Seeing Ye Xiong stand up, Chen Yuluo felt a little touched, that was all.
Fortunately, she had an affair with Ye Xiong. Otherwise, Ye Xiong wouldnt have stepped out to help her at this time. Chen Yuluo was proud of her actions.
She was still the smartest.
Ji Xianfeng thought about it and followed Ye Xiong to gather firewood.
He was not doing this for Chen Yuluo, but for himself.
He had to conserve his strength until tomorrow.
After all, there was still apetition tomorrow. No one would be able to withstand the cold for an entire night.
If these things affected tomorrows game, the gains would not make up for the losses.
He clearly weighed the pros and cons.
Cheng Yi and Wen Song thought for a while and left as well.
When the disciples of the other immortal sects saw the Xuanling Sect disciples, they went to find firewood to start a fire. They also sent out some people to find firewood.
Forcefully resisting was not the solution.
It felt fine when the sky had just turned dark, but it became more and more difficultter on. Many disciples were shivering from the cold.
They knew that it was colder in the mountains than outside, but they didnt expect it to be so cold.
It was simply the rhythm of freezing people to death.
Chen Yuluo got what she wanted and roasted herself on the fire. In an instant, she felt alive again, and the cold air in her body was dispelled by the fire.
Other than Zhao Xin and Lan Qi, the rest of the Xuanling Sect members were warming themselves by the fire. A bunch of useless things.
Lan Qi said coldly.
The other immortal sects also started a fire.
In the middle of the night, everyone entered a meditative state.
Only MO Ruyue took a nket from MO Chengfeng andid it on the ground, curling up beside the fire to sleep.
Lan Qi was so cold that his teeth were chattering, and his hands and feet were cold and stiff.
Looking at the bonfire a few steps away, he did not go over for the sake of his face.
Instead, Zhao Xin went over.
It was just one night. Just bear with it.
Lan Qi told himself over and over again in his heart.
He was a man of backbone.
She was different from the others.
With the bonfire, everyone finally felt that it wasnt as cold as before. The lost temperature was slowly returning.
MO Ruyue was sleeping soundly. She was dreaming that she was nting vegetables in the Demon Pce.
In the dream, she was already the master of the Demon Pce, and the entire Demon Pce was under her control.
She turned Ming Sihans room into a vegetable garden.
There were watermelons, strawberries, and all kinds of vegetables in the garden.
Just as she was doing that, she saw a figure blocking her sunlight.
Mo Ruyue raised her head and saw a white figure. However, she could not see the persons face clearly due to the strong sunlight.
Master?
Could it be Ming Sihan?
The figure turned to the side, revealing a perfect side profile.
Looking at the man, MO Ruyue furrowed her brows tightly and her hands paused.
Master!
After shouting, MO Ruyue looked around guiltily and heaved a sigh of relief when she saw that there was no one around.
Why was this man here?
MO Ruyue was a little flustered and didnt know what to do.
Youre indeed a disciple of Xuanling Immortal Sect!
Ling Shoumo stared at MO Ruyue with an unfriendly gaze.
Youre a good spy, but you should return to Xuanling Immortal Sect.
MO Ruyue listened to the conversation and quickly retorted, Im the Saintess of the Demon Realm, not someone from your Xuanling Immortal Sect. Dont talk nonsense.
She was no longer a member of the Profound Spirit Immortal Sect.
There was no way he would let her go back.
You must return with me!
Ling Shoumo said as he grabbed MO Ruyues wrist.
The force was so strong that MO Ruyue only felt a slight pain in her wrist.
l became a member of the Demon Realm because you forced me!
Im living a good life here now. I hope you wont disturb my good life!
Mo Ruyue flung Ling Shoumos hand away. So what if he was handsome? She would never like someone with bad character.
He wouldnt follow Ling Shoumo either.
To put it nicely, it was the righteous path. The schemes of the immortal sect disciples were no less than those of the demon world.
Ling Shoumo always put on airs, as if he was high and mighty and untouchable.
She still liked the Demon Lord. Although he was sometimes cruel and cold, most of the time, he was more easygoing.
It was unknown who was smearing the Demon Venerables reputation outside, making everyone mistakenly think that the Demon Venerable was a heinous viin.
As the saying went, a long journey tests a horses strength, and a long time reveals a persons heart. Only after spending a long time together could one understand the Demon Venerables character.
MO Ruyue, how dare you betray me?
Ling Shoumos face was gloomy and terrifying. He clenched his fists in his wide sleeves. Did this woman know what she was talking about?
MO Ruyue took two steps back in fear. She felt that Ling Shoumo was about to turn into a monster.
She exined, Its not that I betrayed Xuanling Immortal Sect. Its just that they gave me too much. People climb to the top, and water flows to the bottom. Sect Master Xuanling, please understand.
He wanted the horse to run, but he also wanted the horse to not eat grass. How could there be such a good thing in the world?
As long as the money was in ce, everything would be fine.
The key was that the money was not in ce, and he was always making a big deal out of it.
The conditions offered by the Demon Realm were too good..
Chapter 779 - 779: Surrender
Chapter 779 - 779: Surrender
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ruyue
A voice rang in MO Ruyues ears. She opened her eyes abruptly and saw MO Chengfengs handsome face.
Her eyes were filled with confusion as she asked, Senior Brother? Whats wrong?
He sat up slowly and looked in Ling Shoumos direction.
She saw Ling Shoumo looking at her as well.
Their eyes met, and MO Ruyue felt a little flustered.
It turned out that everything that happened just now was a dream. She hurriedly averted her gaze and pretended not to see Ling Shoumo.
Its dawn. We have to put out the fire.
MO Chengfeng said.
MO Ruyue stood up and handed the nket to MO Chengfeng.
At this moment, the sun had not risen yet, but the horizon was already shining.
It wouldnt be long before the sun broke through the horizon.
Alright.
She stood up and stretched.
She had been sleeping soundly, but in the end, she dreamed of Ling Shoumo.
Fortunately, it was just a dream.
The disciples of the other immortal sects also woke up one after another.
At this time, Chen Yuluo from Xuanling Sect screamed and immediately attracted everyones attention.
Everyone cast a puzzled look over there.
Why are you screaming so early in the morning?
It was very annoying.
Junior Sister, whats wrong?
Ye Xiong asked with concern.
He did not know what had happened.
Chen Yuluos eyes widened in shock.
She stretched out her trembling hand and pointed in Lan Qis direction.Eldest senior brother, eldest senior brother, he
Only then did everyones gaze fall on Lan Qis side. They saw that Lan Qi was still in a meditating position. His face was pale, his eyes were tightly shut, and his body was motionless.
Mo Ruyue saw Lan Qis reaction and could not help but say, Isnt this guy frozen to death?
Hearing MO Ruyues words, a bad feeling shed across everyones heart.
Ji Xianfeng walked toward Lan Qi and called out softly, Eldest Senior Brother?
Lan Qi did not react.
Eldest Senior Brother!
Ji Xianfeng squatted down and ced his hand on Lan Qis neck. His pulse was weak, indicating that Lan Qi was still alive.
Zhao Xin walked over to Ji Xianfeng and asked curiously, Hows Eldest Senior Brother?
Hes still alive, but Eldest Senior Brothers body is very cold. He should be so cold that he cant feel anything.
Ji Xianfeng stood up and looked at Lan Qi helplessly.
Why was Eldest Senior Brother doing this?
Fortunately, they had made a bonfirest night. Otherwise, he might have be like Eldest Brother.
Eldest Senior Brother could not continue to participate in thepetition in this state.
Chen Yuluo listened to Ji Xianfengs words and looked at Lan Qi gloatingly.
Lan Qi had said those words to herst night.
This Lan Qi was really suffering because he wanted to save face.
No one felt that Lan Qi was pitiful. Lan Qi asked for it.
He could only say that he deserved lt.
Sigh, looks like we have one less opponent today.
MO Ruyue crossed her arms and said sarcastically.
She was quite happy to see that Lan Qi was not doing well.
After all, she was not a good person to begin with. Naturally, she would not hope for Lan Qi to live well.
What are you saying here?
Chen Yuluo red at MO Ruyue unhappily.
Although she no longer liked Lan Qi, she did not want other women to talk about her Eldest Senior Brother.
Not just anyone could criticize her Eldest Senior Brother!
MO Ruyue showed an innocent look and just telling the truth. Could it be that your eldest senior brother can still participate in thepetition today?
Lan Qi could still participate in thepetition, so she wrote her name backwards.
At this moment, the other disciples of Xuanling Immortal Sect hurriedly ced Lan Qi beside the fire to warm him up.
I hope that everything is still in time to be filled with the troops.
Not long after, the sun slowly rose, and the entire Misty Mountain was illuminated by the sunlight.
Selfless sunlight shone on the corner of the entire round.
Thepetition was about to begin.
After yesterdayspetition, many people were eliminated.
MO Ruyue and his Senior Brothers had all advanced.
After all, they were all the strength of the Demon Realm. If they could not enter the first round, it would be too embarrassing for the Demon Realm.
She nced in Lan Qis direction. At this moment, Lan Qi had yet to recover.
Im afraid this guy wont be able topete in thepetition.
Ye Junlin, who was beside MO Ruyue, said thoughtfully.
Lan Qis strength could not be underestimated.
After all, he was the eldest disciple of Xuanling Immortal Sect, so his strength would not be too bad.
Of course, they were definitely not the best.
Its best if we cantpete. We still have one less opponent. MO Ruyue said with a smile.
For some reason, she felt that Ling Shoumo was staring at her.
She pretended to look in Ling Shoumo!s direction unconsciously and found that the man was indeed looking at her.
What are you looking at? Havent you seen a beauty before?
MO Ruyue cursed inwardly.
Thinking of the dream she had earlier, she could not help but feel a chill down her spine.
The match began and MO Ruyue was matched with Chen Yuluo.
Chen Yuluo did not pose any pressure to her.
MO Ruyue, prepare to lose.
Before they even started, Chen Yu had already dropped down some harsh words.
It was as if she could knock MO Ruyue to the ground with a flick of her finger.
MO Ruyue nodded slightly and smiled.Confidence isnt wrong. Blind confidence is your fault.
Cut the crap, take this.
When Chen Yuluo saw the smile on MO Ruyues face, she became even angrier. That smile was obviously a mocking smile.
This woman looked down on her!
Damn it!
MO Ruyue saw Chen Yuluo rushing towards her and immediately realized that her every move was without any technique.
There was no prediction.
How could he advance with such strength?
MO Ruyue felt that her opponent must have gone easy on her. There shouldnt be anyone worse than Chen Yuluo here, right?
Why are you hiding?
Nonsense, 1 wont dodge. Ill just stand there and let you hit me.
MO Ruyue looked at Chen Yuluo with a pair of eyes.
Was this guy serious?
You, fight me if you have the ability. Dont dodge.
Chen Yuluo was exasperated.
She clenched her sword tightly in her hand. Facing MO Ruyues provocation, she gritted her teeth and said,
l also want to end such a boring match as soon as possible.
Mo Ruyue rubbed her wrist with a contemptuous look in her eyes. She took out her Ghost Sense and prepared to fight.
When Chen Yuluounched another attack on him, MO Ruyue
unceremoniously took Chen Yuluos sword.
With a whoosh, the sword and saber collided with an ear-piercing sound.
Then, the sword in Chen Yuluos hand was cut in half. It was obviously cut by the ghost thought.
How could this be
Chen Yuluo clenched her slightly numb hand, gritted her teeth, and looked at MO Ruyue in disbelief.
Her sword had been cut in half, and her thumb and forefinger were hurting.
MO Ruyue pointed her sword at Chen Yuluo, her beautiful face expressionless.
Admit defeat?
l Chen Yuluo wanted to say that she did not want to admit defeat, but she did not even have a sword now. It seemed that there was no need to continue fighting.
Not admitting defeat?
l admit defeat!
Chen Yuluo admitted defeat unwillingly.
MO Ruyue did not waste too much time in this round, as the idiot from yesterday had already been eliminated.
The matchsted until noon, and there were only twenty people left on the field.
Among them, there were six people from the Devil World. Qi Shaoyu and Xia Zhixing were eliminated.
There were still three people left in Xuanling Immortal Sect. They were Ji Xianfeng, Zhao Xin, and Wen Song.
The rest were disciples from other sects..
Chapter 780 - 780: Stir-fried Meat with Bamboo Rod
Chapter 780 - 780: Stir-fried Meat with Bamboo Rod
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
A few sect leaders gathered together to discuss the current situation.
l didnt expect that the people of the Demon Realm actually had some skills.
Im worried that the first ce this time wont belong to the Demon Realm, Its impossible for you to belong to the demon world. Stop raising the morale of others here and destroy your own prestige.
But look, only the Demon Realm has the most people advancing. The other immortal sects only have two or three disciples advancing.
Everyone had their own opinions and argued endlessly.
During the afternoon break, Ming Sihan came to MO Ruyues side.
Master, why are you here?
MO Ruyue turned around and was surprised to see Ming Sihan walking over.
Ming Sihan had always been the sect leader.
l came to see if you are tired.
The Demon Lord came to see him?
She was a little ttered, but she still shook her head and said, Its alright. I dont feel tired yet.
Your performance today was very good.
Hehe.
MO Ruyue didnt I-mow what to say, so she could only smile awkwardly.
He added, This is all because Master taught me well.
ttery would not wear off.
It wasnt a bad thing to bootlick.
Hearing MO Ruyues praise, Ming Sihan felt that he enjoyed it.
What reward do you want after thispetition? No matter what the reward is, I will satisfy you.
Reward?
MO Ruyue wanted to say that she should just forget about it.
However, when she thought about her identity, she decided to give Ming Sihan a reward.
Perhaps this reward could even save her life when the timees. You can tell me when youve thought it through.
Ming Sihan reached out and rubbed MO Ruyues head lovingly.
He nced at Ling Shoumo from the corner of his eye.
This damned Ling Shoumo, of all peoples disciples, why did he have to covet his disciple!
He only had one disciple, and he would never let Ling Shoumo have him.
Reward, can I have a death-exemption medal? Oh? Why do you want a death-exemption medallion?
Ming Sihan frowned in confusion.
What was a death-exemption medallion for?
As long as he was here, no one else could kill his disciple.
MO Ruyue stammered. She rolled her eyes and finally thought of a suitable reason.
With the death-exemption medallion, I feel like I have two lives.
Is that so?
Ming Sihan was skeptical. He felt that Ruyue seemed to be hiding something from him.
However, he still chose to believe in Ruyue.
He chose to believe it without hesitation.
Of course, if Master doesnt want to give it to me, then forget it.
MO Ruyue sighed and didnt insist.
This was the forgiveness she had fought for herself.
l didnt say I didnt want to give it to you.
Why did this woman put on a sad expression?
Upon hearing this, MO Ruyue raised her eyebrows and smiled. So Master has agreed, right?
Yes, I agree.
Master, youre really too good to me. Youre the best master in the world.
At this moment, MO Ruyue wished she could hold the man in front of her up to the heavens.
You know that Im good. No matter what happens, dont leave me, okay?
Of course I wont leave Master. Master, you have money, looks, and power. Why would 1 leave Master? Moreover, Master has also said that a teacher for a day is a father for a lifetime.
Youre my father!
Hearing that, Ming Sihan was instantly petrified.
So, in this womans heart, she actually regarded him as her father?
MO Ruyue stared at Ming Sihan. Seeing that Ming Sihan did not speak for a long time, she could not help but say happily,Master, arent you too touched? Actually, theres no need to be too touched. After all, youre so good to me. In the future, Ill definitely treat you well.
Ill definitely let you have someone to rely on and support you in your old age.
As long as his master gave him the position of the Demon Venerable.
MO Ruyue thought to herself.
You actually treat me as your father.
Ming Sihan looked a little unhappy, but he still suppressed his temper.
It was really uneptable!
At the very least, he could not ept it.
Ah, this
Mo Ruyue looked at Ming Sihan carefully and realized that he didnt seem very happy.
Isnt that what you said, Master? You said that you are my father. Although I feel that you are taking advantage of me, I think that you are a good person and can be my father.
For the sake of money, she would let Ming Sihan take advantage of her.
After all, she was very poor back then.
Although she was now a nouveau riche, she was still not as rich as Ming Sihan.
If she could inherit the Demon Lords wealth, then she would be a truly rich person.
Humans would neverin about having too much money.
It was better to have more money.
Did I say this back then?
Ming Sihans hands behind his back clenched into fists.
Did he really say such things back then?
MO Ruyue hurriedly nodded and helped Ming Sihan recall.
She remembered it clearly.
Ming Sihan!s face turned green when he heard that.
He also remembered the stupid words he had said back then.
How could he have known that he would fall in love with this special woman?
The p came too quickly, causing his face to hurt.
Master, do you remember now?
MO Ruyue asked.
Ming Sihans expression was a little unnatural. Of course, he remembered, but he didnt want to admit it.
l did say those words back then, but 1 regret it now.
He didnt want to be her father. He could take care of her like a father.
MO Ruyues expression changed and she frowned. She was a little unhappy. Master, we agreed on this. How can we go back on our words? You are my father.
After the death of the Demon Lord, she was the legal first heir, so she naturally inherited the position of the Demon Lord.
Do you really want me to be your father? The demon was puzzled.
Was his father really that important?
Why was Ruyue so obsessed with having a father?
l dont want a father. I want
The honest MO Ruyue almost blurted out what was on her mind.
Fortunately, she had woken up in time.
What are you thinking about?
Ming Sihan asked. He had to get to the bottom of it today.
MO Ruyue lowered her head and shook her head. Master, its nothing. MO Ruyue, are you disobeying me? If I let you say it, then say it! l dont dare to say.
If you dont tell me, Ill chase you out of the Demon Realm! Ming Sihan spoke to MO Ruyue in a threatening tone.
This made MO Ruyue feel conflicted.
As the saying went, too much talk was bound to make a mistake. Indeed, it was not good to talk too much.
If I tell you, Master, please dont hit me!
MO Ruyue was prepared to negotiate with Ming Sihan first. If Ming Sihan agreed, she would tell him.
Otherwise, if she said anything, Ming Sihan might beat her up.
Lets stir-fry meat with a bamboo stick.
Ming Sihans lips twitched. Who do you think I am? Am I that kind of viin who bullies the weak?
Youre my disciple. Why would I hit you?
Do I look like someone who would hit you?
Mo Ruyue stared at the mans handsome and devilish face, thinking that such a good-looking man wouldnt hit someone.
No, she couldnt be blinded by this mans devilish appearance.
l treated Master as a father because I thought that if Niaster passed away one day, I would shoulder the burden of the entire Demon Realm. I just wanted to shoulder the burden.
MO Ruyue said in a special tone..
Chapter 781 - 781: Enraged
Chapter 781 - 781: Enraged
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ming Sihan looked at MO Ruyue. He seemed to understand this womans heart.
It was a lie to bear the heavy burden. He simply wanted the position of the Demon Lord.
He had thought that it was something else, but it turned out that he just wanted the position of the Demon Venerable.
He couldnt help butugh inwardly.
Why dont you just say it frankly? Dont worry, as long as you obediently stay by my side, the Demon Venerable position will be yours sooner orter. Ming Sihan made a promise to MO Ruyue.
Her dark red eyes were like a gem, shining brightly. Her smile was like the light of March, warming ones heart.
MO Ruyue was mesmerized by the mans smile.
What a vixen!
Master, arent you angry?
Mo Ruyue asked softly. After all, there was someone who was always thinking about his position. He would feel a little disgusted, wouldnt he?
Therefore, she didnt dare to say it seriously every time. She would only knock on the side or say it jokingly.
Ming Sihan reached out and gently stroked MO Ruyues head. Whats there to be angry about?
If it was me, I would be angry.
MO Ruyue said without hesitation.
Theres nothing to be angry about. Everyone wants to climb to the top. This is human nature. If you dont want to climb to the top, then thats fake.
Ming Sihan had never cared about whether the people around him were ambitious or not.
It was normal to have ambition. The main point was that the strength of the ship matched its ambition.
Ambition alone was not enough.
So Master also agrees that a soldier who doesnt want to be a general is not a good soldier, right?
A soldier who doesnt want to be a general isnt a good soldier?
Ming Sihan chanted, and it was indeed the case.
He nodded in agreement. Yes, I agree. Master, youre really too scheming.
MO Ruyue gave Ming Sihan a thumbs up.
Why did he feel that his master was more and morepatible with him?
Whether it was thoughts or thoughts, they were all special opponents.
This venerable self has always had a big picture and is much stronger than some people.
Ming Sihan was referring to Ling Shoumo.
Ling Shoumo looked at Ming Sihan. Although he didnt know what Ming Sihan was talking about, he knew that he was definitely mentioned.
That man was talking to MO Ruyue again.
MO Ruyue was supposed to be his disciple!
However, he remained in the Demon Realm and refused to return.
Previously, he was not sure about MO Ruyues identity. However, he was certain after entering MO Ruyues dream.
You should properlypete and teach those disciples of the immortal sects a lesson.
Let them know how powerful the disciples of our Demon Realm are. Ming Sihan patted MO Ruyues shoulder. He was very confident in MO Ruyue.
How bad could a disciple that he had personally nurtured be?
MO Ruyue only needed to focus on thepetition.
Those disciples of the immortal sects were really getting worse with each generation.
Even Xuanling Immortal Sect did not have many reliable ones.
Master, you can rest assured. For you, for the position of Demon Venerable, I will do my best.
With Ming Sihans promise, MO Ruyue was full of confidence and fighting spirit.
It was just some immortal sect disciples. It was nothing.
After Ming Sihan left, the senior brothers gathered around MO Ruyue.
Ruyue, what did the Demon Lord say?
Xia Zhixing asked curiously. She felt that the demon and Ruyue had talked a lot.
The Demon Lord treated Ruyue differently.
He had never seen the Demon Lord so close to any saintess and talk so much to her.
The demon wants us to teach those disciples a lesson.
MO Ruyue replied.
Wasnt this the main point of her long conversation with the Demon Lord?
He wanted to teach the disciples of the immortal sects a lesson. We really have to teach those guys a lesson.
Qi Shaoyu nodded slightly and looked at Xuanling Immortal Sect.
At this moment, the atmosphere in Xuanling Immortal Sect was a little gloomy.
Lan Qi was throwing a tantrum.
You guys are really good-for-nothings! Out of so many people, only three had entered the finals.
Chen Yuluo whispered, Its already good enough that three of them made it to the finals.
What else do you want? me them for not being able to defeat the opponent?
Youre still talking back. If I were here, 1 would definitely be able to enter the finals.
Lan Qi said in exasperation. He found Chen Yuluo even more unpleasant to the eye.
He pointed at Chen Yuluo and cursed, Everyone is working hard, but youre the only one whos dragging the entire Celestial Gate. I dont even know why youre here. Are you here to make up for the numbers?
Chen Yuluo listened to Lan Qis voice and her face revealed an incredulous expression.
This man was ming her again?
My strength is not low, okay?
Chen Yuluo did not want to be scolded by Lan Qi, so she immediately started to retort.
What right do you have to me us here? Why dont you tell us that you sufferedst night because you wanted to save face? You were frozen to death without a fire. If I hadnt found out first, you would have died long ago. You dyed todayspetition and didnt enter the finals.
So what if he was the eldest senior brother? Did she say something wrong?
You have the nerve to me us here?
Lan Qis face turned green and white, and his hands were already clenched by his side.
Chen Yuluo, do you still have me as your senior brother? he shouted angrily.
Humph? Eldest Senior Brother?
Chen Yuluo sneered. He actually knew that he was the eldest senior brother.
What kind of senior brother is a senior brother who only knows how to me his own people? Why dont you go and see other peoples senior brother? I really envy MO Ruyue of the Devil World. Her Eldest Senior Brother is always thinking about her Junior Brothers and Sisters. Even if someone in her team is eliminated, her Eldest Senior Brother will onlyfort the eliminated person. Only you, her Eldest Senior Brother, are clearly in the wrong, but you insist on ming your Junior Brothers and Sisters.
She spoke out all her dissatisfaction with Lan Qi in a loud voice.
The loud voice attracted the attention of the other immortal sect disciples beside him.
The disciples of the immortal sects pointed at Lan Qi.
In fact, they also saw that they were all in a daze. It was just that it did not have anything to do with their immortal sects, so they naturally could not say anything.
It had to be said that this Xuanling Sects Eldest Senior Brother was indeed not much.
Because of his stubbornness, he had missed the match, and now only three people had entered the finals.
He did not look for any problems with himself and pushed all the me on his junior brothers and sisters.
This ispletely unreasonable.
Mo Ruyue did not mind themotion. She clicked her tongue and mocked Lan Qi,Comparing the enemy with my eldest senior brother, my eldest senior brother is really amazing.
Upon hearing MO Ruyues praise, MO Chengfeng smiled embarrassedly.
Hearing MO Ruyues proud tone, MO Chengfeng felt especially happy.
All he could see was MO Ruyues figure.
Why dont you give up thepetition? It saves me the trouble of embarrassing myself here.
MO Ruyue said provocatively.
This sessfully infuriated Lan Qi. Lan Qi flew up, his palms turned into sharp ws and flew towards MO Ruyue.
Everyone on the scene was watching this scene closely.
Ming Sihan ced his hand on the table.
Everyone was shocked by this sudden scene.
What did Lan Qi want to do?
It wasnt good toy a hand on a woman in front of so many people, right?
Although that woman was from the Demon Realm, thepetition had not ended yet. She should not have attacked her.
This was Xuanling Sects Eldest Senior Brother?
It was a little tasteless..
Chapter 782 - 782: What Move Is This?
Chapter 782: What Move Is This?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Even Ling Shoumo, who was sitting in the sect leaders seat, couldnt help but frown.
What was this Lan Qi doing?
It was toote to say, but at that moment, a green figure flew up quickly and agilely. A silver bone fracture fan blocked Lan Qis attack.
Nio Chengfeng and Lan Qi were entangled.
Lan Qi, are you crazy? What do you want?
This fellow actually wanted to attack Ruyue. Who gave him the guts?
Lan Qi had long been dominated by anger. He only wanted to kill MO Ruyue now.
He wanted MO Ruyue to die in his hands.
Get out of my way.
Move aside? Move aside and let you attack Ruyue?
MO Chengfeng smiled coldly.
There was no way he would step aside.
Then dont me me for not being polite.
Lan Qi gritted his teeth. His eyes turned sharp as he started to attack MO Chengfeng.
Lets go up and help Eldest Senior Brother. Baili Xijian said and joined the battle.
Jing Xichen also joined the battle.
The three-on-one situation caused Lan Qi to retreat.
How could he be a match for three people alone?
However, none of the disciples of Xuanling Immortal Sect stepped forward to help.
Previously, he had been scolded by Lan Qi, and now, Lan Qi wanted to attack him because of his personal emotions. This was all his own fault, so he should let him settle it himself.
They were not prepared to interfere, lest Lan Qi scolded them again.
The sect leaders looked at each other in dismay and looked at Ling Shoumo.
After all, it was the disciples of Xuan Ling Immortal Sect who started the fight.
He wondered how the sect leader of Xuanling would deal with these matters.
At this moment, Ling Shoumos expression was gloomy. He had never expected Lan Qi to do such a thing.
He wasnt steady at all.
Being angered by a few words from others was not a moldable talent at all.
Ling Shoumo was a little disappointed with Lan Qi. It seemed that Xuanling Immortal Sect would have to change a new person in charge.
He could no longer put Lan Qi in an important position.
Ming Sihan sneered, A disciple from a famous sect is actually so good at causing trouble. Wont the sect leader of Xuanling do anything about it?
Was this man mute?
Ming Sihans eyes were filled with contempt.
At this moment, the other sect leaders also looked at Ling Shoumo.
The disciple who attacked first was a disciple of the Xuanling Immortal Sect. If it was a disciple of another immortal sect, they would have already stopped him.
However, they really could not stop the disciples of Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Their master was right here. No matter what, it was not their turn to stop him.
On the other side, Lan Qi was defeated very quickly. How could he win against three people alone?
Hey on the ground in a sorry state, the sword in his hand falling to another ce.
The sunlight was so bright that he couldnt even open his eyes.
His head was buzzing.
He couldnt get up for a while. The pain in his chest made his veins pop out.
He could only lie on the ground.
Ji Xianfeng stepped forward and stopped MO Chengfeng and the other two, saying,Everyone, enough is enough. This is my eldest senior brothers fault.
I apologize to you.
Im sorry. He apologized sincerely.
Eldest Senior Brother was too much. He couldnt even control his emotions and actually attacked others without caring about anything in Ethereal
Mountain.
Although the other party was from the demon world, thepetition had not ended yet, so they could not fight.
If they wanted to fight, they could wait until the end of thepetition to fight with the people of the demon world.
Lan Qi represented the face of their Xuanling Immortal Sect. Now, the face of the immortal sect had beenpletely lost.
Take good care of your eldest senior brother. Dont let your eldest senior brothere out and bite people.
Jing Xichen said disdainfully.
A dignified righteous sect actually ignored the rules of thepetition and attacked others during the break.
He wasnt afraid that the other immortal sects wouldugh at him.
Jing Xichen shook his head secretly. This Lan Qi was not capable and was easily swayed by his emotions.
Everyone looked at Ji Xianfeng. This was the second senior brother of
Xuanling Immortal Sect. This second senior brother was much more powerful than the eldest senior brother.
Eldest Senior Brother was like a brainless idiot.
As long as they had some brains, they would not make a move on the people of the Demon Realm at this time.
If they wanted to make a move, they would have to wait until thepetition was over.
Ji Xianfengs expression was a little ugly. He asked Zhao Xin and Cheng Yi to bring Lan Qi back.
This time, their Xuanling Immortal Sects face had beenpletely thrown away by their Eldest Senior Brother Lan Qi.
Chen Yuluo looked at Lan Qi being dragged back and the disdain in her eyes became even more obvious.
The faces of the Xuan Ling immortal sects were all thrown away by the big senior brother, and now the other immortal sects were all talking about us.
She said softly. She wished she could find a crack in the ground and hide. She did not want to be Lan Qis senior sister.
It was too embarrassing.
He had taken the initiative to hit the other party, but in the end, he was carried back. It was simply embarrassing.
In our seats, Ming Sihan once again said to Ling Shoumo, I thought that the disciples of Xuanling Immortal Sect would be able to hold on for at least ten minutes, but in the end, it onlysted for a blink of an eye.
Ling Shoumos expression was a little ugly. but he was Dowerless to refute.
In the end, he could only retort coldly,The Demon Lord is so talkative. Do the disciples of the Demon World know?
l talk a lot, but Im telling the truth. If the sect leader of Xuanling doesnt want to listen to me, why dont you let the disciples of Xuanling not steam steamed buns to gain some pride?
Who could he me for his disciples failure?
Ming Sihan sneered in his heart.
The other sect leaders listened to Ming Sihan and Ling Shoumos argument and kept their mouths shut.
He did not dare to persuade her.
Judging from the situation, the Demon Venerable had the upper hand.
The Xuanling Sect Master was suppressed in every aspect.
There was nothing he could do. A mystic spirit disciple was really embarrassing his master.
It would also bring shame to their immortal sects.
After the break, the finals began.
The people who entered the finals once again began to fight.
MO Ruyues opponent was Zhao Xin.
Looking at Zhao Xin, MO Ruyues face was expressionless.
Zhao Xin stared at MO Ruyue and said slowly,Before thepetition, I have a question to ask you.
What is it?
MO Ruyue met Zhao Xins gaze and blinked. She had already guessed something.
Who asked her name to be so eye-catching?
Are you really MO Ruyue of the Celestial Sect of the Spirit?
Although he had convinced himself that the woman in front of him was not MO Ruyue of the Xuanling Immortal Sect, he was still a little worried.
After all, the MO Ruyue in front of him was beautiful and intelligent. Moreover, she was powerful and had an outgoing personality.
He was worlds apart from MO Ruyue of Xuanling Immortal Sect.
However, as soon as he got close to this woman, he felt a sense of familiarity.
This sense of familiarity made him doubt his previous opinion.
MO Ruyues expression was calm. She said calmly, Im MO Ruyue from the Devil World.
Alright, youre indeed from the Demon Realm.
Xin Zhao gave up and pointed his sword at the beautiful woman in front of him.
l wont give in to you just because youre a woman!
l never need others to give in.
She knew that Zhao Xin was powerful, so she took out the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Zhao Xin looked at the Heaven-cleaving Sword in MO Ruyues hand, and his eyes turned cold.
The Demon Lord had actually given the Heaven-cleaving Sword to MO Ruyue, which showed how important this woman was to the Demon Lord.
The two of them began to fight. MO Ruyue was in the Foundation Building realm, and so was Zhao Xin.
Their levels were the same, and in terms of strength, there should not be much difference.
However, MO Ruyue knew the Neb Sword Technique. If she used the Neb Sword Technique to fight with Zhao Xin, Zhao Xin was no match for MO Ruyue at all.
Zhao Xin was forced to retreat step by step. He even felt that he could not withstand MO Ruyues attacks. It was no longer a matter of whether he was exhausted or not.
He waspletely unable to withstand it.
MO Ruyues moves were unpredictable, and it was impossible to predict what her next move would be.
What kind of move was this?
Moreover, the Heaven-cleaving Sword in MO Ruyues hand could cut through iron like mud. His sword was cut in half by the Heaven-cleaving Sword in less than three moves..
Chapter 783 - 783: Beating People Up
Chapter 783: Beating People Up
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Within ten moves, Xin Zhao lost the match.
l, I lost.
Looking at the Heaven-cleaving Sword on his neck, Xin Zhao could only admit defeat.
He didnt waste any time because his strength was already there.
There was no point in continuing to dy. It would only waste everyones time.
Seeing Zhao Xin admit defeat, MO Ruyue put away her Heaven-cleaving
Sword.
This Zhao Xin was quite straightforward and didnt dy.
Wait a minute.
Seeing MO Ruyue turn around, Zhao Xin hurriedly called out.
Whats the matter? MO Ruyue stopped in her tracks and nced back at
Zhao Xin.
What was your move just now?
Zhao Xin asked curiously. He had never seen such a strange move before. It should be a unique skill.
Upon hearing this, MO Ruyue proudly replied, Neb Sword Technique, my Demon Venerable Master taught me.
The Neb Sword Technique was simply tailor-made for her.
Let her shine in thispetition.
Zhao Xin looked at the woman and saw that her eyes were shining. He had never seen such a light in MO Ruyues eyes.
Watching MO Ruyue leave, Zhao Xin silently turned around.
Twenty into ten, ten into five.
In the end, there were only five people left. One was Xuanling Immortal Sects
Second Senior Brother, Ji Xianfeng; one was Tomato Immortal Sects Eldest
Senior Sister, Jiang Mo; one was Spirit Path Immortal Sects Youngest Junior Brother, Ming Xuan; and the other was MO Ruyue and Eldest Senior Brother, MO Chengfeng.
It looked like there were five people, but there were actually four.
Because MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng were both from the Devil Realm, they could notpare themselves with their own people.
It was still decided ording to the immortal sects drawing of lots.
In the end, MO Ruyue of the Demon World VS Ji Xianfeng of the Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Tomato Immortal Sects Big Sister VS Spirit Path Immortal Sects Little Brother Ming Xuan.
As for MO Chengfeng, he could only stand aside.
Ruyue, do your best.
Okay, good luck.
MO Ruyue was rxed and did not care.
None of these disciples were at the Golden Core stage. If there were any Golden Core disciples, she might have to focus on dealing with them.
If there werent any Golden Core cultivators, it would be much easier for her to deal with them.
Ji Xianfeng stared at MO Ruyue with aplicated feeling in his heart.
Thank you.
MO Ruyue nodded slightly, her expression calm and rxed.
To her, her senior brother was just a passerby.
She did not have much affection for these senior brothers.
Back then, when she was in Xuanling Immortal Sect, she was often ignored.
Your name is exactly the same as one of my junior sisters. Ji Xianfeng said thoughtfully.
What about your Junior Sister? MO Ruyue asked with a smile. She
Ji Xianfeng wanted to say something, but he didnt say it in the end.
MO Ruyue was undercover in the Devil World.
The exact same name. Was it a coincidence or
If you dont want to say it, then lets start.
MO Ruyue was toozy to talk nonsense with Ji Xianfeng.
MO Ruyue did not show any mercy to her former Second Senior Brother.
She was now a member of the Demon Realm, so she naturally wholeheartedly served the Demon Realm.
After all, the Demon Lord had treated her well.
Although she wasnt a good person, she wasnt someone who would bite the hand that fed her.
The Demon Lord had given her too many benefits.
Ji Xianfeng did not dare to underestimate MO Ruyues attacks. He was forced
to retreat.
He was unable to withstand MO Ruyues attacks.
This womans attack was too fierce.
In just a short moment, the oue was clear.
It seems that Ruyue will definitely be the first.
Baili Xijian looked at this scene, his eyes full of affirmation towards MO Ruyue.
Jing Xichens lips curled into a deep arc as he continued, As expected of Ru
Yue.
Jiang MO and Ming Xuan won.
The final battle was also a battle between two women.
One was MO Ruyue from the Demon Realm, and the other was Jiang MO from the Tomato Immortal Sect.
The entire arena was silent.
Jiang Mo t s cultivation base was close to the stage of the Gold Core, which was why he had persisted until now.
MO Ruyues cultivation was at the early stage of the Foundation Building realm. Everyone thought that Jiang MO would win against her.
However, those who had fought MO Ruyue before were all lost in thought.
Especially Zhao Xin and Pioneer.
The two of them were at the middle stage of the Foundation Establishment realm, but they were no match for MO Ruyue, who was at the early stage of the Foundation Establishment realm.
MO Ruyue will lose for sure. Jiang Mo e s cultivation base is close to the Golden Core Stage.
Yeah, dont even think about it. Jiang MO will definitely win.
No matter how powerful MO Ruyue is, she cant beat Jiang Mo.
Yes, Jiang MO is also invincible.
The disciples of the other immortal sects discussed animatedly.
Ye Xiong looked at MO Ruyue and listened to what the person beside him
MO will win?
Jiang MO will definitely win, Chen Yuluo said confidently. Shes at the peak of the Foundation Building realm. Itll be easy for her to defeat MO Ruyue,
Not necessarily.
Not necessarily!
Zhao Xin and Ji Xianfeng said at the same time.
After saying that, the two of them looked at each other.
Indeed, great minds think alike.
Second Senior Brother, Third Senior Brother, why would you say that?
Ye Xiong asked curiously.
Why did Second Brother and Third Brother favor MO Ruyue more?
Was MO Ruyue really that powerful?
It didnt look like much.
Zhao Xin nodded. His gaze fell on MO Ruyue as he slowly said,She didnt even use her full strength when we fought her. Think about how terrifying that woman is.
Ji Xianfeng nodded in agreement.
Ye Xiong crossed his legs and crossed his arms. He looked at MO Ruyue from afar and said,But, her cultivation level is already there.
If an early-stage foundation establishment cultivator could defeat a mid-stage foundation establishment cultivator, that was luck. It was simply a fantasy to fight against the peak in the early stage.
The Neb Sword Technique is very powerful.
Everyone fell silent and stared at the two women.
He felt that the atmosphere was a little tense.
Next was the battle between the two women.
MO Ruyue knew that she had be the focus of everyones attention. She didnt show any panic on her face, but she felt a little awkward in her heart.
Her senior brothers were looking at her, and the Demon Lord was also looking at her. Ling Shoumo should be looking at her too.
She was really the star that everyone had their eyes on, dazzling and brilliant.
It was a pity that she didnt have a strong light on her, or else the light would blind their eyes.
Tomato Immortal Sects Big Sister Jiang MO, please guide me!
Jiang MO cupped her hands at MO Ruyue, her voice cold.
She had always been the pride of Tomato Immortal Sect. She had lost the first round of thepetition and hoped to win the first ce in this round.
Demon Realm Saintess MO Ruyue, please advise me. MO Ruyue also cupped her hands at Jiang Mo.
Although she was arrogant, she knew some manners.
Then, the two of them started the match.
MO Ruyue had even fought a Golden Core cultivator before, so she was naturally not afraid of a Foundation Building cultivator.
However, he had used a brick to fight with a Golden Core cultivator, so it was easier.
MO Ruyue decided not to use the brick now.
Ming Sihan had said before that using the Neb Sword Technique could allow one to fight someone of a higher level.
MO Ruyue held the Heaven-cleaving Sword tightly in her hand as she fought Jiang Mo.
You still have some skills.
Jiang MO fought MO Ruyue for a round and realized that she didnt gain any advantage.
Her pupils shrank as she re-examined the woman in front of her.
MO Ruyue smiled and said in a rxed tone,Thank you for thepliment. Youre not bad yourself!
Continue!
Jiang Mos expression became serious. She would do her best to get up.
MO Ruyues smile faded and she continued to fight with Jiang Mo.
Because they could only go so far, everyone still held back. If they did not hold back, they would be kicked out of thepetition if they identally killed the other party.
This match was absolutely beautiful. The two figures, one red and one ck, moved like a phoenix, and every move was beautiful..
Chapter 784 - 784: Let Go of My Good Disciple
Chapter 784 - 784: Let Go of My Good Disciple
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Theyre not fighting. Theyre clearlypeting in dance.
If there was Petal Shower, the scene would be even more beautiful.
Yeah, two beautiful women fighting is much better than two men fighting.
The scene turned into a scene of chasing stars. Everyone treated the fight as a dancepetition.
After the dust settled, MO Ruyue stared at Jiang Mo. Jiang MO lowered her eyes and looked at a strand of hair that had fallen off. She frowned.
Looks like I lost.
Jiang MO admitted defeat, feeling a little regretful that she didnt get first ce.
Actually, youre already very impressive, MO Ruyue encouraged.
Hearing his opponents praise, Jiang MO smiled and said,Thank you for thepliment.
She turned around and left, not knowing how to exin this to her master.
In the end, MO Ruyue won the final match.
Ruyue, good job!
The Senior Brothers below apuded MO Ruyue. Their Junior Sister was really good. She was too amazing.
Ming Sihans handsome face had a smile on it. His Ru Yue was really amazing.
As expected of Ming Sihans disciple.
He turned his head and nced at Ling Shoumo proudly. He said in a low voice,Sect Master Xuanling, how is my disciple?
The disciples of Xuanling Immortal Sect were powerful, but they were still not as powerful as his disciples.
Ling Shoumos face darkened. He nodded slightly and flew down to the center of the arena.
MO Ruyue was still in a good mood, but when she saw a man beside her, the smile on her face froze.
This man was none other than her former master, Ling Shoumo.
Looking at the man in front of her, the smile on MO Ruyues face gradually faded. She didnt know what this man wanted to do.
Because of the previous dream, she had always been on guard against the man in front of her.
Master Xuanling, is there something wrong?
MO Ruyue couldnt help but speak up after being stared at by Ling Shoumo until her scalp went numb.
The disciples of the immortal sects were also very curious about the scene in front of them. Could it be that the Sect Leader of Xuanling Sect was going to give MO Ruyue an award?
Lan Qi and the others watched this scene closely. They faintly felt that what would happen next would shock everyone.
Seeing Ling Shoumo approaching, MO Ruyue subconsciously took a step back.
Seeing MO Ruyues actions, Ling Shoumos thin lips parted slightly, and his tone carried a trace of probing. Are you afraid of me?
Was he that scary?
Why was this woman afraid of him?
l didnt!
Mo Ruyue replied with a heart full of lies.
She was afraid that Ling Shoumo would expose her identity. This man was stronger than her, and she definitely couldnt beat him at the moment. Using a brick and the wrath of heaven, he might be able to take a gamble.
However, she felt that it was not to that extent yet.
Sect Master Xuanling, if you have anything to say, just say it.
Nio Ruyue pretended to be calm, and there was no trace of abnormality on her beautiful face.
Only she knew how flustered she was.
You are my disciple, MO Ruyue! You should belong to Xuanling Immortal
Sect!
Ling Shoumos figure shed and grabbed MO Ruyues wrist.
The moment these words were said, the entire hall was in an uproar.
Whats going on with Xuanling Sect Leader? He actually said that MO Ruyue was his disciple and that MO Ruyue was a disciple of the Devil World.
Everyone could not understand what was going on.
Was there something wrong?
Lan Qi and the others looked at each other in shock.
Why would his master say that?
Could it be that his master had discovered something?
Otherwise, his master would not have said that.
Could it be that MO Ruyue, the Saintess of the Demon Realm, is really our Junior Sister MO Ruyue?
Xin Zhao frowned. He could refute his senior brother and the others, but he did not dare to refute his master.
Moreover, his master must know something to say that.
Master wont casually talk nonsense about the Great Cards.
He believed in his masters judgment.
Impossible. MO Ruyue is an ugly monster with average aptitude and a dull personality.
Ye Xiong shook his head. He did not believe that the Saintess of the Devil World, MO Ruyue, was MO Ruyue from their Celestial Sect.
The two of them werepletely different.
Zhao Xin nced at Ye Xiong and questioned,Are you denying Master?
Ye Xiong was at a loss for words. He did not dare to deny his master.
His gaze was fixed on the two people on the stage.
MO Chengfeng and his junior brothers watched this scene silently. Their expressions were solemn.
They could not believe that Ruyue was a disciple of Xuanling Immortal Sect.
If he was a disciple of the Immortal Sect, then he was a spy.
A spy would be severely punished in the mo territories.
Therefore, they did not want Ruyue to be a spy.
Sect Master Xuanling, please let go of our junior sister!
MO Chengfengs face darkened, and he gripped the silver bone fracture fan tightly.
What is this guy thinking about?
Jing Xichens face was full of seriousness, and he was very conflicted with Ling Shoumo.
Ling Shoumo ignored MO Chengfengs words. He grabbed MO Ruyues wrist tightly and stared at her.
It was as if she wanted to find something from those eyes.
MO Ruyue clenched her fists tightly. She felt nothing but disgust when she saw the fairy-like man in front of her.
Was this man trying to kill her?
Damn it, even if she was a spy sent by Xuanling Immortal Sect, was Ling Shoumo afraid that he wouldnt kill her?
Fortunately, she already knew that Xuanling Immortal Sect was unreliable and had long joined the Demon World.
Let go of me.
MO Ruyue exerted her strength, but found that this mans strength could not move her at all.
Ling Shoumos eyes seemed to have seen through MO Ruyues thoughts. He said in a deep voice,l know. You are MO Ruyue from Xuanling Immortal Sect. Why did you betray Xuanling Immortal Sect?
No one liked being betrayed.
MO Chengfeng, Baili Xijian, Ye Yunfeng, Ye Junlin, Jing Xichen, Qi Shaoyu, and Xia Zhixing.
The seven of them flew into the center of thepetition.
Let go of our junior sister!
MO Chengfeng berated.
Ling Shoumo waved his right hand and sent out an invisible force that sent the seven people flying.
The seven of them were no match for Ling Shoumo at all.
The difference between Nascent Soul and Foundation Establishment was too great.
Senior brother
MO Ruyues heart ached as she watched the seven figures fly away.
Fortunately, his senior brothers were not injured.
It was just an invisible force that bounced them outside
Sect Master Xuanling, Im the Holy Maiden of the Demon World. I dont know what youre talking about.
MO Ruyue gritted her teeth. Ling Shoumos grip on her wrist was very painful. She wanted to use her cultivation, but she realized that her cultivation was suppressed by this man and could not be used.
This was a true expert!
This was the first time she had encountered such a situation.
The man refused to let go. MO Ruyue silently ced her other hand behind her back, ready to use the brick to hit the man in front of her.
Why did you betray Xuanling Immortal Sect? Why did you betray me?
Ling Shoumos eyes were bloodshot. It seemed that he hated being betrayed.
MO Ruyue wanted to greet the man herself, but she caught a glimpse of a ck figure flying over from the corner of her eye.
She retracted her hand and dismissed the idea of taking the brick.
Shes my good disciple, Ling Shoumo. Let go of my good disciple.
Ming Sihans face darkened. This Ling Shoumo actually refused to let go of his disciple.
His dark red eyes were filled with killing intent.
A few strands of her silver-white hair were blown by the wind, making her look messy and elegant.
l didnt want to betray him, but he called me his good disciple and gave me a lot.
At this point, MO Yue knew that she could no longer hide her identity, so she might as well take the initiative to surrender to Ming Sihan to show her feelings.
Although she used to be a member of Xuanling Immortal Sect, from now on, she was a member of the Demon World.
Although he was still a little nervous after admitting his identity, he felt more relieved and rxed.
The pressure of being a spy was too great..
Chapter 785 - 785: Three Months of Confinement
Chapter 785 - 785: Three Months of Confinement
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
So, you betrayed me!
Ling Shoumo became even more excited when he saw that MO Ruyue had finally admitted his identity.
He tightened his grip on MO Ruyues wrist.
MO Ruyue endured the pain from her hand and sneered, Betrayal? You guys were the ones who were unkind first, so dont me me for being unkind. We agreed to go undercover in the Demon Realm for three months, but in the end,
Ive been f*cking enduring for almost three years!
Back then in Xuanling Immortal Sect, did you treat me as your disciple? Did they treat me as their junior sister? Im not that popr. Youre the ones who belittled me.
But I am in the demon world, the senior brothers treat me like a sister, the demon treats me very well, anything good is my, you treat me like grass, but they treat me like treasure.
Everyone would choose the demon world.
MO Ruyue nced at her Senior Brothers and the Demon Venerable.
Although her senior brothers only treated her wellter, the fiend race had treated her well from the beginning.
She was so direct and superficial. She would side with whoever was good to her.
She did not have masochistic tendencies. She would shamelessly rush up to treat anyone who was not good to her. He had never been such a person.
Release her!
Ming Sihans figure shed and appeared in front of MO Ruyue. He spoke coldly to Ling Shoumo.
This woman was no longer just his apprentice.
So what if he was undercover? He had to have this woman!
Seeing that Ling Shoumo didnt let go, Ming Sihan didnt hold back and started fighting with Ling Shoumo.
When immortals fought, little ghosts would suffer.
The two Nascent Soul Realm cultivators battle shook the entire ground. Their strength was too strong.
More importantly, Ming Sihan was holding a woman in his arms.
Hugging a person still affected him a lot, but Ming Sihan felt very rxed.
MO Ruyue hugged Ming Sihan tightly in fear, afraid that she would identally be a sacrifice in their battle.
She leaned into Ming Sihans arms and said loudly,Master, why dont you let me down? Hugging me like this will affect your performance, right?
The main reason was that he didnt want to be identally injured. Moreover, the sudden rise and fall felt like a roller coaster ride. It was terrifying.
She had to find a chance to get Ming Sihan to put her down.
If I let you go, what if you get kidnapped?
Uh
Ming Sihans answer made MO Ruyue speechless. Shes not a child, shes been kidnapped by a man,
It was really amazing.
F * ck, Im convinced!
In the end, Ming Sihan and Ling Shoumo fought to a draw.
Master, if you let go of me, youll win against him.
MO Ruyue whispered.
Ming Sihan nced at Ling Shoumo. He didnt want to waste any more time with Ling Shoumo.
There was no need.
Thepetition this time was to let these arrogant disciples of the Celestial Sect know how trash they were.
They kept saying that they wanted to destroy their Demon World, but they did not even see if they had the ability. All of them were daydreaming here.
l wont let you go.
As he spoke, he grabbed MO Ruyues hand and dragged her away.
Ling Shoumo coldly watched as Ming Sihan dragged MO Ruyue away. He clenched his fists behind him, and his nails dug into his palms. Nio Ruyue should have been a disciple of Xuanling Immortal Sect.
But now, she had left with Ming Sihan.
The people from the other immortal sects did not say anything.
This seemed to be a matter between Xuanling Immortal Sect and the Demon World. How could they interfere?
They watched Ming Sihan leave with the people from the demon world.
Originally, they had nned to capture all the people from the Demon Realm after thepetition ended.
However, when they saw the fight between Ming Sihan and Ling Shoumo, they retreated.
She was also afraid.
They were no match for him at all. They would only be cannon fodder if they went up.
Everyone dispersed unhappily.
Since the first ce had been taken by the Demon Realm, the remaining immortal sects would be divided into second ce. Third ce did not seem to have much meaning.
They did not dare to ask too much about Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Therefore, he was prepared to leave quietly.
He could not stay here any longer.
One of the immortal sects left Ethereal Mountain, leaving only a group of people from Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Because if their master did not leave, they did not have the courage to leave.
He stood rooted to the ground and looked at Ling Shoumo like a wooden statue.
Ling Shoumo turned around and looked at Lan Qi with a hint of coldness in his eyes.
Shouldnt you give me an exnation about MO Ruyue? he said coldly.
He knew that MO Ruyue had been undercover in the Devil World for three months.
However, he did not pay attention to this matter after that. This matter had always been arranged and managed by Lan Qi.
Meanwhile, he was in closed-door cultivation. It was only when he saw MO Ruyue after molting that he remembered what had happened.
Lan Qi knelt on the ground with a thud and kowtowed to Ling Shoumo. Master, I, I dont know!
You dont know? What kind of senior brother are you? Why is MO Ruyue refusing toe back now?
You dont even know?
Ling Shoumo wished that he could kill the eldest disciple in front of him with a single p.
How dare he dy such an important matter for so long?
Now, MO Ruyue had betrayed him!
Master, I know I was wrong. I beg for your forgiveness.
Lan Qi was so frightened by Ling Shoumos voice that he trembled and cried.
He could already feel his masters anger.
When Master said so much, he was usually angry.
He knew that he had angered his master.
Then, he hurriedly said, Master, actually, Im doing this to eradicate the Demon Realm as soon as possible. I want Junior Sister Ruyue to provide us with clues and information in the Demon Realm. At that time, well work together from the inside and outside to take down the Demon Realm in one fell swoop.
Master, I really did this to eradicate the Demon Realm, but I didnt expect Junior Sister Ruyue to betray the sect.
Lan Qi didnt want to admit it at first, but in his panic, he seemed to have found a good way to escape.
He pushed all the me onto MO Ruyue.
This way, his master might not me him.
The others looked at each other. They didnt plead for Eldest Senior Brother.
Eldest Senior Brother asked for it.
Moreover, Eldest Senior Brother had previously treated them like that and scolded them in front of everyone. They were useless good-for-nothing.
He felt that the face of their immortal sect had beenpletely lost by Eldest Senior Brother alone.
Ling Shoumo kicked Lan Qi and said coldly, In the future, everything in
Xuanling Immortal Sect will be managed by Ji Xianfeng!
As for you, you will be grounded for three months.
After saying that, Ling Shoumo also left Ethereal Mountain.
Ji Xianfeng didnt expect this to happen to him, so he was ttered.
Eldest Senior Brother, are you alright?
He looked at Lan Qi with concern.
At this moment, Lan Qi hated Ling Shoumo to death. When he saw Ji Xianfenging to help him, he pushed Ji Xianfeng away and said,Dont cry for me here. You must be very proud of yourself, right?
Ji Xianfeng listened to Lan (Zi t s angry rebuke and felt very helpless.
He was just being kind, but he didnt expect this man to say such words.
He felt a little pained.
Eldest senior brother, l
Stop pretending in front of me. Youve wanted to manage Xuanling Immortal Sect for a long time, right? Lan Qiughed coldly.
The person who wanted him to step down the most should be Ji Xianfeng..
Chapter 786 - 786: You Will Be Punished
Chapter 786: You Will Be Punished
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Seeing this, Chen Yuluo said to Ji Xianfeng, Second Senior Brother, dont worry about Eldest Senior Brother. He thinks that everyone is bad now.
She had finally seen this mans true colors and would never look at Eldest Senior Brother again.
Lan Qi snorted coldly and turned to leave Ethereal Mountain.
The rest of the people looked at each other. They did not sympathize with their Eldest Senior Brother.
This time, Eldest Senior Brother had really angered Master.
They had been in Xuanling Immortal Sect for so long, but they had never seen their master so angry.
All of this was because of MO Ruyue.
No one would have thought that MO Ruyue, the Saintess of the Devil World, was actually their original Junior Sister.
Judging from Junior Sister Ruyues appearance, she seemed to be doing very well in the Demon Realm.
In the past, her ugly and mediocre junior sister was now as dazzling as the stars in the sky and as bright as the pearls in the shells.
I really didnt expect that ugly girl to turn into a white swan.Ye Xiong sighed.
Chen Yuluos mouth twitched when she heard that. Then does Senior Brother like MO Ruyue more or me more?
Ye Xiong approached Chen Yuluo and grinned,l naturally prefer junior sister
Yuluo.
Really?
Of course its true.
Ye Xiong hurriedly nodded. No matter how good MO Ruyue was, she was still someone elses Junior Sister.
His only junior sister was Chen Yuluo.
Hearing Ye Xiongs words, Chen Yuluo smiled.
Devil World
MO Ruyue had not seen the Demon Venerable for a day.
The Demon Lord shut the door tightly and locked himself inside.
MO Ruyue really did not have the guts to knock on the door.
Junior Sister Ruyue, were you really a disciple of Xuanling Celestial Sect?
Qi Shaoyu still couldnt believe it.
Actually, he had suspected MO Ruyue before.
Jing Xichen looked at Qi Shaoyu and frowned.
Yes.
MO Ruyue was a little depressed.
Then, she said very sincerely, But Im now a member of the Demon Realm. Ill never return to Xuanling Immortal Sect in the future. This is where I belong. People strive for higher ground, while water flows downwards.
She had gained a lot of things in the Demon World. Even if the Demon World did not want her, she would not return to Xuanling Immortal Sect.
She hated that ce. She hated that ce to the core.
He Xi came to MO Ruyue i s courtyard and saw a group of people gathered there.
Why is everyone here? Are you ready to eat?
He had a happy expression on his face, as if he was here to eat.
Everyones attention was drawn to He Xi, who had a gentle smile on his face.
l havent eaten.
MO Ruyue replied gloomily.
Seeing everyones serious expressions, He Xi stopped smiling and asked curiously, Whats wrong with you guys? Youre so unhappy.
He had heard that the Demon World had won the first ce in the Immortal Leaguepetition. Logically speaking, everyone should be happy. Why did everyone have such a heavy expression? Did he miss something important?
He Xi was very confused.
Everything started because of me
MO Ruyue sighed and confessed her past to everyone without hiding anything.
Other than the fact that she was a transmigrator, she had said everything else that she should not say.
So thats what happened.
After hearing this, He Xi revealed an enlightened expression.
He thought it was something big.
Wasnt this a very simple matter?
Is it worth it for all of you to be unhappy about such a small matter? He Xi raised his eyebrows slightly.
MO Ruyue raised her head and looked at He Xi. This matter is already very serious. Master hates traitors the most.
He Xi didnt know the importance of this matter at all.
He hates traitors, but he doesnt hate you. Although you were a traitor in the past, youre no longer one. Moreover, youve brought glory to the Demon
Realm.
He Xiforted MO Yue.
Only now did he know that there was such a thing, but personally, it was really not an important matter.
MO Ruyue lowered her head. But Master has already locked himself in his room for a day. He must be angry with me and doesnt know how to face me.
Why dont I take the initiative to leave the Demon Realm?
You cant.
You cant.
You cant.
You cant.
The few men spoke in unison. They were all reluctant to let MO Ruyue leave the Demon Realm.
If MO Ruyue left the Demon Realm, the Demon Realm, which had finally be lively, would return to its previous coldness.
No one wanted MO Ruyue to leave the Devil World.
He Xi nced at everyone and said, Look, everyone is reluctant to let you leave.
At this moment, Li Zeyan also said,Sister, Ill go wherever you go. Ill always follow you.
In fact, he hoped that the elder sister would leave the Demon Realm.
Then, he would bring his sister back to where she came from.
At this moment, a womans voice rang out. Her voice was filled with schadenfreude. MO Ruyue, youre done for.
Shen Yunyan broke in from the outside. When she saw so many senior brothers inside, she was stunned because she had brought great news.
It was good news for her, but for MO Ruyue, it could be a disaster.
MO Ruyue nced at Shen Yunyan, as if she had already guessed what this woman was going to say next.
She looked at Shen Yunyan calmly as if she was watching a clown performance.
The gazes of the few senior brothers also fell on Shen Yunyan.
He did not bring Shen Yunyan with him to the tournament.
Because Shen Yunyans strength was weak, she would not be of much help if she brought her over. It was better to stay in the Demon Realm.
When am I finished?
She replied weakly.
He was annoyed now, but this woman came to find trouble again.
Shen Yunyan crossed her arms and had a smug smile on her face. As long as she told them what she had heard, MO Ruyue would be finished.
She couldnt wait to see MO Ruyue!s frightened expression.
MO Ruyue, youre a spy from Xuanling Immortal Sect. You cant escape this time. Everyone will know your true colors.
Shen Yunyan lifted her chin, her face full of pride.
He nced at the expressions of his senior brothers and saw that their expressions were calm.
She felt that something was wrong.
Why did his senior brothers have such expressions?
She must have been frightened, thats why she had such an expression, right? Shen Yunyan thought to herself.
His Senior Brothers probably didnt know that MO Ruyue was a spy from Xuanling Immortal Sect, so they were stunned when they heard her words.
MO Ruyue, youre a spy from Xuanling Immortal Sect. Youll be punished next. Ill report this to the Demon Lord and have him order you to be turned into a human pig.Shen Yunyans eyes were filled with malice.
He had to teach MO Ruyue a lesson.
This time, she wanted MO Ruyue to never be able to make aeback.
Li Zeyan red at Shen Yunyan fiercely. Who dares to hurt my sister?
If anyone hurt his sister, he would fight them to the death.
Shen Yunyan, whats wrong with you?
MO Chengfengs face darkened. Why was Shen Yunyan so vicious?
He berated her unhappily.
Shen Yunyan listened to MO Chengfengs scolding and the smile on her face froze. She said,Eldest Senior Brother, MO Ruyue is a spy from the Xuanling Immortal Sect.
She is our martial sister, your martial sister!
MO Chengfeng emphasized..
Chapter 787 - 787: She’s the Main Body’s!
Chapter 787: Shes the Main Bodys!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
But now that everyone knows shes from Xuanling Immortal Sect, we should capture her and turn her into a human pig!
Shut up!
MO Chengfeng shouted coldly at Shen Yunyan. Did she think that they knew nothing?
This womans heart could be punished.
Eldest Senior Brother, are you trying to protect her?
l said, shut up!
Did Shen Yunyan not understand what he was saying?
Eldest Senior Brother, do you like MO Ruyue? Is that why youre protecting
You
MO Chengfengs face sank. He couldnt say that he didnt like MO Ruyue. He did like MO Ruyue.
However, he had never crossed the line.
Shen Yunyan, we already know about this. What are you talking about? Xia Zhixing frowned. She felt that Shen Yunyan was talking too much.
She kept talking about Ruyue being a spy. Did she hate Ruyue that much? Since you already know MO Ruyues identity, why havent you arrested her?
If you dont dare to arrest her, Ill go to the Demon Lord and ask him to personally order MO Ruyue to be arrested!
Shen Yunyan said angrily.
It was not easy for her to get a chance to grind MO Ruyues bones and scatter her ashes. She would never let it go.
Shen Yunyan then walked out.
He Xi stood in front of Shen Yunyan and said, Do you think the Demon Lord doesnt know about this?
If the Demon Lord knew, he would definitelye and capture her.
Hearing Shen Yunyans words, He Xi sneered. To tell you the truth, Ruyue is the Demon Lords disciple. Even if Ruyue used to be from Xuanling Celestial
Sect, the Demon Lord would not do anything to her.
This woman didnt know that the Demon Lord liked MO Ruyue.
Therefore, the Demon Venerable would never do anything overboard to MO Ruyue.
Shen Yunyan looked at the crowd. Everyone was speaking up for MO Ruyue.
This made her very dissatisfied.
Why was MO Ruyue the only one in everyones eyes?
What kind of drug did MO Ruyue give these people?
So, everyone doesnt care about the spies anymore?
Shen Yunyan clenched her fists and looked back at her unmoved seniors.
Everyone was very tolerant of MO Ruyue.
She was like a clown here, out of ce with everyone.
There was more anger in his heart.
No one treated her well.
Just take care of yourself. You dont have to worry about other things.
Jing Xichen asked faintly. Why did this little junior sister like to go against Ruyue so much?
Jing Xichen had always detested such women.
Youre all blind.
Shen Yunyan shouted loudly, not caring about the image of ady that she had created.
These men were all dazzled by MO Ruyue.
Then, Shen Yunyan ran away, leaving everyone speechless.
What is wrong with Shen Yunyan?
Xia Zhixing crossed her arms and showed a helpless face.
MO Ruyue stood up and said to her Senior Brothers,Senior brothers, you should go back and rest. I want to be alone and think about it.
Ruyue, dont be so optimistic. Were still here.
Baili Xiforted her gently.
His voice seemed to always be so gentle.
MO Ruyue nodded. I understand, Senior Brother Baili. She watched her senior brothers leave.
In the end, only He Xi and Li Zeyan were left in the courtyard.
Miracle Doctor, you snot-lid go DacK ana rest first. Ruyue, has your master thought about how to face it?
He Xi couldnt help asking.
Ming Sihan was really awkward like a girl. He even locked himself in his room.
He had never seen such a childish person.
l havent thought about it yet. Im afraid that my master will turn me into a human pig. I dont dare to face him now.
MO Ruyue smiled bitterly.
He Xi patted MO Ruyues shoulder and said,Dont worry, your master wont do
that.
Godly doctor, why dont you go and help me see how my master is doing?
MO Ruyue pulled He Xis arm.
I-Im a little hungry.
He Xi rubbed his belly. He wanted to eat the food that MO Ruyue cooked.
He had been eating in the canteen of the demon world for the past few days, and he felt that he had lost weight from hunger.
Every time she went to the cafeteria to eat, she needed to muster up her courage.
The food in the canteen was not just ordinary.
Miracle Doctor, as long as you help me find out what my master is about, you can eat as many meals as you want.
Really?
Godly doctor, I never lie.
Alright, since youre so sincere, Ill help you. Alright, Ill go cook for you now.
MO Ruyue then went to the kitchen to get busy.
He Xi seemed to be very familiar with Ming Sihan. If he asked He Xi to look for Ming Sihan, Ming Sihan would definitely not do anything overboard to He Xi.
After confirming that there was nothing wrong with Ming Sihan, she went over to take a look.
He didnt want to get himself into trouble.
He Xi ate at MO Ruyues ce, then went to the Demon Pce to look for Ming Sihan.
The door of the demonic pce was closed, and Ming Sihan locked himself in his room.
At this moment, outside the door of Marquis Crane Creek, he knocked on the door and said,Ah Ming, I know youre inside.
Can Ie in?
As soon as he finished speaking, the door opened.
He Xi hesitated for a moment, then walked in.
As soon as she entered, the door closed automatically with a bang. The room was dark and cold. He Xi had goosebumps all over her body.
Ah Ming, can we not y tricks?
There was a smell of alcohol in the air. Did Ming Sihan drink?
He Xi walked inside and saw a man with fair skin in the pool. His chest muscles were exposed, and his silver-white long hair was floating casually. His devilish face was stained with a hint of drunkenness.
The ck dragon tail stirred the water, causing the surface of the water to fluctuate.
The man at this moment was a demon.
He Xi walked closer step by step.
Why did you lock yourself up here and drink?
He asked, squatted down, and nced at Ming Sihans firm muscles. The lines were perfect and smooth, and every part was just right.
His slightly protruding Adams apple looked especially sexy.
Fortunately, he was a normal man. Otherwise, he would have been charmed by this man.
What a monster!
She cursed Ming Sihan in her heart.
Whats the matter?
Ming Sihan askedzily, his voice slightly hoarse.
He raised his head and poured himself a ss of wine. The wine flowed down his chin to his Adams apple and then to his chest. All the way to the depths of his lower abdomen
Are you alright?
He Xi had never seen such a dejected side of this man.
Was Ming Sihan really hurt?
He sighed softly and his gaze fell on the dragons tail that was stirring the water surface. You cant go on like this.
He Xi, why do you think men like women?
Ming Sihan frowned slightly and asked vaguely.
He Xi felt tired from squatting, so she sat down beside the pool.
It must be because theres something about a woman that attracts you.
Otherwise, why would he fall in love with a woman?
He spoke without hesitation.
Then tell me, what did MO Ruyue have that attracted me?
Isnt that a question for you? If she has a lot of bright points that attract me, wont we be rivals in love?
Shes mine!!!
A cold glint shed across Ming Sihans eyes.
He Xi wanted to snatch MO Ruyue from him?
Then, Ming Sihan grabbed He Xi by the neck and dragged her into the pool. Water sshed everywhere.
He Xi waspletely drenched.
Ming Sihan pressed He Xi against the side of the pool. His dark red eyes were scarlet and terrifying.
It was as if the weak He Xi was going to be strangled to death by Ming Sihan in the next second..
Chapter 788 - 788: She’s Just My Beloved Disciple
Chapter 788 - 788: Shes Just My Beloved Disciple
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ming Sihan, you are drunk!
He Xi raised his head, his facial features a little twisted. He held Ming Sihans hand tightly.
What was wrong with this man?
He should have only heard the word rival.
She is mine!
Yes, yes, yes. Its yours. If you continue to be like this, Ill resist.
He Xi didnt want to hurt Ming Sihan so badly, lest Ming Sihan would be paralyzed in bed for a few days.
At this moment, the door was pushed open and MO Ruyue walked in with some food.
She thought that after He Xi persuaded the demon, the demon would forgive her.
At this time, she brought some delicious food here to apologize, and the Demon Lord would definitely let go of the past.
Therefore, seeing that it was about time, she pushed the door open and entered. It was also a good surprise for her Demon Venerable Master.
Master.
MO Ruyue shouted out for him to make her lose her ability. Her gaze fell on the pond behind the screen. She saw a half-naked Demon Lord pressing down on He Xi, whose face was ruddy.
She seemed to understand everything.
Ming Sihan raised his head slowly and met a pair of eyes that were filled with fear, shock, and embarrassment.
Yes He was about to apologize.
MO Ruyue remembered her own punishment. Even if she was wrong, she could not apologize.
If he said sorry, his master and He Xi would be struck by lightning.
Sorry to disturb you.
MO Ruyue put down her things and left the hall as if she was escaping.
If she had known that they were doing such a thing here, she would not have barged in.
He had miscalcted. He hoped that it would not affect the good things of his Demon Venerable Master and Miracle Doctor He Xi.
She had long felt that there seemed to be some unspeakable secret between He Xi and her master.
So this was the truth.
Look at He Xis blushing face, Shes too shy.
MO Ruyue left the Devil Pce.
In the room, He Xi suddenly pushed Ming Sihan away. She gasped for breath and almost suffocated to death.
This Ming Sihan didnt know what was important at all.
Are you crazy?
He Xi coughed, his voice hoarse.
Ming Sihan sobered up a little. He nced at He Xis red face and said apologetically, Im sorry.
Just now, Ruyue came and saw him and He Xi leaving.
Its over, its over. Ruyue will misunderstand. Its all your fault. Why are you drinking?
He Xi climbed into the pool, drenched.
In order to eat MO Ruyues food, he almost died in Ming Sihans hands.
After that, He Xi left while cursing.
MO Ruyue returned to the courtyard, feeling very disappointed.
Maybe she should leave the demon world. Anyway, she was just a spy. Even if she defected, it still couldnt change the fact that she was a spy.
She didnt want to die, nor did she want to make things difficult for her Demon Venerable Master.
The best way was to leave the demon world.
Sister, why are you so unhappy?
Li Zeyans heart ached when he saw MO Ruyues sorrowful face.
MO Ruyue gently stroked Li Zeyans head. She looked at Li Zeyans appearance and realized that he was bing more and more handsome.
When he grew up, he would definitely charm thousands of girls.
Brother Zeyan, why dont we leave the Demon Realm together? MO Ruyue asked.
Li Zeyan was stunned for a moment before he said happily,Alright! Do you really want to leave the Demon Realm?
Seeing Li Zeyan so happy, MO Ruyue couldnt help but be stunned.
Did this child not like staying in the Demon Realm anymore?
If she was pennless, she definitely wouldnt have left the demon world so easily.
But now that she had money, she naturally had the confidence to leave the Demon Realm.
As for Salted Fishs mission, he probably wouldnt be able toplete it.
Fortunately, there would be no punishment forpleting the quest, so she could leave the demonic realm with a clear conscience.
I dont want to leave my sister. Ill be wherever she is.
He didnt care whether he left the Demon Realm or not, as long as he could be by his sisters side.
The rest is not important
Okay, then you can leave the Demon Realm with me. I raised you because of your hatred
Sister, I dont want revenge anymore. I just want to be with you and protect you forever.
Li Zeyan would not tell MO Ruyue that he had killed all of Li Zeyans enemies.
Not a single one was left.
Of course, no one would know what he had done.
MO Ruyue left the Devil Realm with Li Zeyan and Hillghost.
She didnt want to make things difficult for her Demon Venerable Master, nor did she want to be turned into a human pig.
Therefore, she chose to leave.
As for where she was going next, she did not know.
There must be a ce for him to stay.
The next day, MO Chengfeng came to MO Ruyues courtyard early in the morning.
However, he did not see anyone in the courtyard.
Li Zeyan was gone, and so was Ruyue.
A bad premonition shed across his heart.
He quickly pushed the door open and saw a letter on the table.
He opened the envelope and quickly browsed through it. His expression became more and more solemn.
Ruyue had left the Demon Realm!
She didnt tell him where she was going. She only said not to look for him and not to miss him.
MO Chengfeng hurriedly took the letter left behind by MO Ruyue and went to look for the Demon Venerable.
Niing Sihan received the letter from MO Chengfeng. He looked at the words on the white paper and his face darkened.
He gripped the letter tightly and turned it into ashes.
When did she leave?
MO Chengfeng had never seen the demon so angry.
His heart trembled. He did not know if he was right to tell the Demon Lord that Ruyue had left the Demon Realm.
It was just that even if he did not say it, the Demon Lord would find out sooner orter.
It should best night.
MO Chengfeng answered truthfully.
Ming Sihan clenched his fists, his knuckles turning white.
I order you to arrest the Saintess of the Devil World, MO Ruyue, and bring her back safely.
Did he run away with the woman?
Damn it, she actually left him without saying a word.
Dont let him catch you, or else hell definitely chain her up by his side.
Yes.
MO Chengfeng epted the order and left.
Fortunately, the demon said that he would bring Ruyue back safely.
If he wanted to see her dead or alive, he would be worried about Ruyues safety.
He Xi also knew about this and immediately went to Ming Sihans residence.
You finally sobered up and did something nice?
As soon as he entered, he mocked Ming Sihan. Who asked this man to treat him so rudely yesterday?
Moreover, Ruyue was lucky enough to see that scene.
Ming Sihan rubbed his temples as he felt a headacheing on.
Can you stop bothering me? he said impatiently.
He Xi knew that Ming Sihan was troubled by the fact that Ruyue had left, so he said seriously,By the way, how are you going to treat Ruyue after finding out her identity?
Who is she? Her identity is my beloved disciple!
So you dont care about the fact that shes a spy?
Ive said before that shes only my beloved disciple. I wont admit that shes a spy, and if I dont admit that shes not!
Hearing Ming Sihans words, He Xi heaved a sigh of relief. She sat down on a chair beside him and that case, why havent you seen her these past few days?
Otherwise, Ruyue would not have left the Demon Realm.
If this fellow did not speak, Ruyue would definitely be worried, so she could only slip away.
In the end, he felt that this man had the greatest responsibility..
Chapter 789 - 789: Looking for MO Ruyue
Chapter 789 - 789: Looking for MO Ruyue
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Im waiting for her to apologize. Who asked her to keep lying to me?
Ming Sihan snorted.
As long as Ruyue acted coquettishly in front of him and admitted her mistake, wouldnt the matter of being a spy be resolved?
Actually, I came to look for you yesterday because Ruyue asked me to sound you out. In the end, you pinched me and even let Ruyue see it.
He Xi said in a bad mood, causing his throat to feel a little ufortable today.
Now that Ruyue had left, this guy knew that he was anxious.
He knew how to flick his snot when it was in his mouth. She knew that she had to find someone after she disappeared.
So where do you think Ruyue went?
Ming Sihan asked.
If I knew, I would have persuaded him toe back.
At this time, Mo Ruyue had already left the Devil World. She was heading north because there was snow in the north. She wanted to see a heavy snowfall.
Sister, we might have to stay in this inn for the night.
Mm, lets stay here. Were not in a hurry to hurry.
They checked into a very inconspicuous inn. MO Ruyue was dressed as a man while Li Zeyan, who was next to her, was dressed as a woman.
The main reason was to deceive others.
MO Ruyue asked for a guest room. She was worried about Li Zeyan staying in a room alone.
In her heart, she had always treated Li Zeyan as an ordinary child.
While they were eating, two men in ck came in.
Boss, did you serve a woman and a teenage boy recently?
No, did this woman and a teenage boy do something wrong?The shop owner shook his head and asked with a puzzled expression.
That woman is the Saintess of the Demon Realm. If you find anything and provide clues, the Demon Realm will definitely reward you heavily!
Demon, Demon World Saintess!
When the boss heard this title, he was so scared that he stuttered.
Even if he had clues, he wouldnt dare to provide them.
If he were to expose the Demon Realm Saintess, wouldnt he be killed by the Demon Realm Saintess if she found out?
The two men in ck rode away on their horses and prepared to go to the next ce to ask.
When MO Ruyue heard this, she felt a chill run down her spine.
No way, were they really going to capture her and turn her into a human pig?
She had really dug a hole for herself.
Thinking about it, MO Ruyue felt like crying.
It was toote for regrets now.
She was originally wanted by other sects, and now she was wanted by the Demon Realm. She had be a rat on the street that everyone hated.
The whole world was filled with her wanted posters.
It was all Ling Shoumos fault!
At this moment, MO Ruyue pushed all the me onto Ling Shoumo.
If it wasnt for this man exposing her in public, she wouldnt have had to bite the bullet and admit it, and she wouldnt have ended up like this.
Sister
Li Zeyan could not help but call out when he saw that MO Ruyue had not moved.
His voice was filled with worry.
Sister, are you alright?
MO Ruyue forced a smile and said, Dont worry, Sister. Its fine.
Its just that the following days will be difficult. Moreover, you have to dress up as a girl all the time.
She reached out and stroked Li Zeyans head with pity.
She had made Li Zeyan suffer with her.
She could defeat ordinary people, but she could not defeat the Demon Lord.
It was definitely not possible to openly go against the Demon Venerable.
Moreover, the Demon Venerable was her teacher. How could she repay her teachers kindness with enmity?
Sister, Zeyan doesnt feel wronged. Isnt he just pretending to be a girl? Zeyan didnt feel wronged at all. It was fine as long as he could be with his sister. Li Zeyan shook his head.
In fact, he could have solved all those troubles without worrying about being caught.
However, he did not dare to act rashly because his sister had taught him not to kill.
His sister didnt like him, who was a bloodthirsty man.
He listened to his sister and hadnt killed for a long time.
The recent killings were just to avenge the original Li Zeyan.
After taking revenge, the original Li Zeyans soul could finally rest in peace.
MO Ruyue felt gratified when she saw how obedient and sensible Li Zeyan was.
Fortunately, he was not alone after leaving the Demon Realm. He had Li Zeyan and Mountain Ghost by his side.
At night, MO Ruyue was lying on the bed while Li Zeyan was lying on the bed next to her.
She tossed and turned, unable to fall asleep. In her mind, she was thinking about her Demon Venerable Master. Her Master must be very disappointed in her.
However, she really didnt want to die.
I dont want to be made into a human pig.
Even if he lived, it was better than death.
Li Zeyan did not fall asleep either. He heard the sound of tossing and turninging from the bed next door. Did his sister miss the demon too?
He wanted to say something but hesitated. In the end, he didnt say anything so as not to disturb his sisters rest.
Xuanling immortal sect
In the Seven Stars Hall, incense was floating in the golden incense burner inside the room. The incense was calming.
A white-robed, ck-haired man was meditating. His body was surrounded by a light blue halo.
At this moment, Ji Xianfeng walked in from outside. He looked travel-worn, and it was obvious that he had just returned.
Master.
Ji Xianfeng shouted and steadied his breathing.
He did not want his master to think that he was not steady.
He cupped his hands respectfully at the meditating man. Ling Shoumo raised his eyes slightly, his gaze emotionless.
What is it?
Master, this disciple has just received news that MO Ruyue, the Saintess of the Devil World, is wanted by the Devil World. The entire Devil World is looking for MO Ruyue. Other than that, the other sects have also put MO Ruyue on the wanted list.
The Demon Realm was probably looking for MO Ruyue because MO Ruyue was a spy sent out by Xuanling Immortal Sect.
At this moment, the people of the Devil World were ready to take revenge on
MO Ruyue.
Ji Xianfeng raised his eyes and looked at Ling Shoumo hesitantly. He asked,Shizun, should we also send people out to look for MO Ruyue?
After all, MO Ruyue was once a disciple of Xuanling Immortal Sect. Even if she had not made any contributions, she had worked hard to go undercover in the Devil World for so many years.
The reason why Mo Ruyue did not return was because Lan Qi did not handle the matter in the middle.
The blue halo around Ling Shoumo gradually disappeared. He stood up and said, Find her. We must bring MO Ruyue back.
Yes, sir!
Ji Xianfeng responded and prepared to leave.
Wait! Ling Shoumo thought for a moment and shouted.
Does Master have any other instructions?
Master will personally go and find her. Even if you find her, you wont be able to do anything to her.
Ling Shoumo said. The current MO Ruyue was no longer the MO Ruyue of the past.
The disciples of Xuanling Immortal Sect were no match for that woman.
Therefore, it was best to do it personally.
Alright.
Ji Xianfeng was stunned. He didnt expect his master to personally take action.
Ming Sihan also heard about this matter. When he heard that Ling Shoumo had personally gone to look for Ruyue, he was instantly furious.
He immediately brought his subordinates from the Demon Realm to look for Ruyue.
He had to find Ruyue before Ling Shoumo. MO Chengfeng would be in charge of the Demon Realm to prevent those immortal sects from taking the opportunity to attack the Demon Realm.
After all, many immortal sects did not like the Demon Realm. They were very likely to attack the Demon Realm while he was not around.
Someone had to be stationed in the Demon Realm.
Apart from MO Chengfeng, the others had all gone out to look for MO Ruyue.
Of course, Shen Yunyan was an exception.
Shen Yunyan wished that MO Ruyue would die outside and nevere back.
For a spy from an immortal sect, the Demon Venerable actually went to look for MO Ruyue personally. What did that woman do? Was it because MO Ruyue knew how to cook? ttery?
Shen Yunyan cursed MO Ruyue in her heart..
Chapter 790 - 790: Playing in the Snow
Chapter 790 - 790: ying in the Snow
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue headed north and finally arrived at a small city in the north on the fifth day.
Brother, its so cold here.
Li Zeyan called MO Ruyue Brother because MO Ruyue was dressed like a man.
Li Zeyan was still dressed like a girl. His fair cheeks were pink, and the tip of his nose was a little red.
They were all frozen and sniffed from time to time.
His snot was frozen out.
Normally, he would hibernate on such cold days.
But he couldnt hibernate now.
Its a little cold. Im freezing to death.
Nio Ruyue shivered from the cold. She did not expect it to be so cold here. The cold in the north was indeed well-deserved. The sky was snowing heavily, and the cold wind whistled with a trace of bone-piercing coldness.
Quick, go inside the carriage.
MO Ruyue chased Li Zeyan into the carriage and drove it forward.
MO Ruyue and Li Zeyan entered the clothing store together. There was a stove in the store. The temperature was much higher than outside, but it was still cold.
MO Ruyue rubbed her hands and gritted her teeth.
He should have gone south to the ind city where spring was all year round.
It was toote to regret now.
Are you here to buy clothes?
A chubby boss dressed in mink fur walked out from behind.
MO Ruyue did not beat around the bush and went straight to the point.Boss, take out the warmest clothes in your shop.
She hade out in a hurry and did not bring winter clothes. She did not expect it to be so cold here.
Upon hearing MO Ruyues voice, the boss knew that business had arrived.
She quickly took out the warmest clothes in the shop.
They were all made of animal fur.
Li Zeyan frowned. Looking at the clothes made of animal fur, he felt conflicted.
Mo Ruyue chose clothes made of cotton. As for the animal fur, she did not touch it.
No business, no killing. She rejected him subconsciously.
She bought a few sets of mens cotton clothes, paid for them, and prepared to leave with Li Zeyan.
At this moment, a group of people walked in from outside. A cold wind blew in, mixed with scattered snowkes, dancing in the sky.
MO Ruyue tightened her grip on Li Zeyans hand.
Looking at the clothes of those people, he knew that they were subordinates of the Demon Realm.
She felt a little uneasy.
Dear guests, are you here to buy clothes too?
The shop owner thought that there was another big business, so he greeted them with a smile.
The leader took out two portraits and pointed at the people on the paper. He asked,Have you seen the two people in the painting?
The shop owner looked at it carefully, then shook his head and said, l havent seen them before. Are they wanted criminals?
One of them is the Saintess of the Demon Realm, and the other is the Saintess
younger brother. We were ordered to bring her back.
MO, people from the Demon Realm, you, you are
When the shop owner heard this, he was so scared that he took a few steps back. His legs went weak from fear, and his expression was panicked. Obviously, they did not expect these people to be from the Demon Realm.
He had heard many rumors about the Demon Realm.
The people of the Demon Realm killed anyone they saw. They did not know how to reason at all.
The boss thought he was dead.
Soon, the people of the Demon Realm left on their own ord. They did not kill him or rob his shop.
In the past, he had only heard of the Demon Realm. He knew that the people of the Demon Realm burned, killed, robbed, and abused all kinds of evil.
This was the first time he had encountered people from the Demon Realm. Those people did not kill or rob him.
Are these people really from the Demon Realm?
The boss could not help but mutter to himself.
The people from the Devil Realm walked past MO Ruyue and nced at MO Ruyue and Li Zeyan, but they did not recognize them.
A man and a girl.
It was impossible for these two people to be the Saintess and her brother.
The people from the Demon Realm left directly without any doubts.
MO Ruyue watched them leave and couldnt help but rub her chin. It seemed that her act was very sessful.
He was not suspected.
Lets go back to the carriage.
Alright.
MO Ruyue brought Li Zeyan onto the carriage and chose a decent inn.
Because he didnt have to worry about money now. As long as he didnt spend money extravagantly, he could live afortable life.
Sister, it seems that people from the Devil Realm are looking for us all over the world. There are even people from the Devil Realm here. In the room, Li Zeyan started to call MO Ruyue Sister again.
Thats right. Its faster than I thought, but they cant find me!
MO Ruyue smiled proudly.
No one would have thought that she had changed into a mans outfit and even put on a mans makeup. Her entire face had darkened.
Moreover, Li Zeyan was dressed like a girl.
Lets go downstairs for dinner.
After changing into the cotton jacket, MO Ruyue finally felt that it wasnt that cold anymore. She then brought Li Zeyan downstairs for dinner.
The weather here was cold, so there were naturally very few foreign guests. Everywhere was cold and cheerless.
There were only two or three people eating downstairs.
Recently, those people from the demon world and the immortal sect have appeared very frequently. I dont know if youve noticed.
l found out a long time ago, and I know why.
A man had a smug look on his face as he deliberately kept her in suspense.
The other two stared at the man curiously and asked impatiently,Why?
Tsk, I wont tell you.
Dont keep me in suspense. Tell me what happened. If you tell me, Ill treat you to this meal.
Alright, for the sake of this meal, Ill tell you.
Actually, the Demon World and the Immortal Sect are both looking for a woman. That woman is the current Demon World Saintess! Do you know the original identity of the Demonic Saintess?
l dont know.
So that Demon World Saintess is a disciple of the Xuanling Immortal Sect. The Xuanling Immortal Sect sent her to the Demon World as a spy. Its been almost three years and she hasnt been discovered
MO Ruyues mouth twitched as she listened to their discussion.
It had to be said that most of what he said was true.
However, theres still something I dont understand. Since the Demon Worlds Holy Maiden has escaped, it makes sense for the people of the Demon World and the Xuanling Immortal Sect to look for the Demon Worlds Holy Maiden. What did the Holy Maiden of the Demon Realm have to do with them?
You dont know this, right? The Demon World Saintess has the Heaven-cleaving Sword. The Heaven-cleaving Sword is a sword that all cultivators want.
Now, everyone seemed to understand everything.
MO Ruyues face darkened, and she sneered in her heart. If he wanted to obtain her Heaven-cleaving Sword, he should see if he had the ability.
Brother?
Li Zeyan also heard those words.
He held MO Ruyues hand tightly. As long as his sister said the word, he would be able to settle those troubles.
Dont worry about them. Lets go eat and y in the snow after dinner. MO Ruyue did not mind.
Other than Ming Sihan and Ling Shoumo, she wasnt afraid of anyone else.
The reason she was afraid of Ling Shoumo was that he was indeed powerful. She was afraid that she was no match for him.
As for Ming Sihan, that man was her teacher, and she would never do anything to him.
Of course, she couldnt beat Ming Sihan.
Therefore, he could only hide it now..
Chapter 791 - 791: A Fine-Skinned Pretty Boy
Chapter 791 - 791: A Fine-Skinned Pretty Boy
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
After MO Ruyue and Li Zeyan had their meal, they went out to y in the snow.
A few passers-by walked over and shook their heads when they saw the two of them ying with the snow.
It was obvious that he had not seen the world.
He was actually ying with the snow so enthusiastically in such a cold winter.
Nio Ruyue had never seen such heavy snow in her life.
This was the first time that he could not hide his excitement.
A snowball smashed into Li Zeyans head, causing him to cover his head.
Big Brother!
He crouched down and rolled the snowkes on the ground into a big snowball.
He raised the huge snowball and caught up with MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue immediately ran away. She was shocked. Are you trying to smash me to death?
The snowball she threw was only the size of a ping pong ball, but this guy rolled a snowball the size of three basketballs.
MO Ruyue was hit by a snowball and fell to the ground.
Are you serious? Then dont me me!
MO Ruyue got up and sniffed. She had to show Li Zeyan what she was capable of.
She had also rolled a huge snowball, the kind that was a little difficult for her to carry.
She carried Snowball and chased after Li Zeyan.
Ill smash you to death!
As MO Ruyue spoke, she threw the snowball in her hand at Li Zeyan, causing him to fall to the ground.
He looked like a little snoffrrnan.
When the passerby saw this, he pointed at MO Ruyue and said,As an elder brother, how can you bully your younger sister like this?
Dont be fierce to meBig brother!
Li Zeyan saw that the passerby was as fierce as Yue and quickly retorted sternly.
The passerby was so frightened by Li Zeyan that he forgot to speak.
MO Ruyue quickly ran over and held Li Zeyan!s hand. She smiled at the passersby and said,l was just ying with my sister.
The passerby looked at the two of them and shook his head as he left.
He had never seen such a strange pair of siblings.
MO Ruyues originally beautiful hands were red and thick from ying with the snow. She stuffed her numb hands into her pockets.
Lets go back and warm ourselves by the fire. Welle backter to y with the snow.
Alright. Li Zeyans face was red, but he was fine.
He was still a little sleepy at first, but he felt much better now.
The two of them walked towards the inn.
Not good, the bandits are here, the bandits are here!
When the pedestrians on the road heard that the bandits wereing, they quickly ran into their homes.
The shops next door closed their doors.
Before MO Ruyue and Li Zeyan could return, the door of the inn was closed.
Everyone seemed to be extremely afraid of the Horse Gang.
Not long after, the figures of the bandits appeared in the heavy snow.
These mounted gangsters were arrogant and arrogant, holding shiny sabers in their hands.
Brother
Li Zeyan held MO Ruyues hand as a murderous intent shed across his eyes.
These mounted gangsters surrounded MO Ruyue and Li Zeyan.
There were about 20 bandits riding on horses, their faces ferocious.
MO Ruyue sized them up and found that these mounted gangsters were actually cultivators. The lowest among them was at the Foundation
Establishment realm, and two of them were at the Golden Core realm.
Or rather, some cultivators who did not want to cultivate properly became bandits.
Yo, this little girl is really pretty. How about we capture her and make her our
Chiefs concubine?
Sure, of course, what about this man?
A man? Skinny skin and tender flesh. Didnt Third Brother like men with soft skin and tender flesh? Bring it back to Third Brother.
MO Ruyue didnt act rashly. Instead, she looked coldly at the mounted gangsters.
If it was not ast resort, she really did not want to expose her identity.
As long as she exposed her identity, the Demon Realm and other immortal sects would discover her.
It was better to pretend to let them capture them first and wait until they reached their nest to eliminate these Horse Gang.
Anyway, they were all evil people. Killing them could be considered as getting rid of evil for the people.
MO Ruyues mind was racing.
Li Zeyans eyes turned cold. What were these scums trying to do?
He stared at the mounted bandit with an unfriendly gaze.
He hoped that these guys wouldnt seek death.
Seeing Li Zeyans fierce expression, the bandit seemed to be even more excited. He had a smile on his face. Oh, and its a little pepper. Chief will definitely like it very much.
Be obedient and surrender. We can still be gentle. Otherwise, dont me us for being rude to you.
The other mans face was fierce and his tone was full of threat.
MO Ruyue tugged at Li Zeyan, hinting at him not to act rashly.
It was not suitable to fight here now, lest people from the Demon Realm were attracted.
Brother?
Li Zeyan tilted his head and looked at MO Ruyue in confusion.
Why did she pull him back?
Dont hurt my sister, MO Ruyue said to the mounted gangsters. Well go with you!
At least you know whats good for you. Bring the two of them along.
Yes, sir!
Then, MO Ruyue and Li Zeyan were brought to the back of the horse.
The mounted gangsters were even more pleased with themselves when they saw that they had obediently surrendered.
After robbing a few shops and plundering arge pile of supplies, these mounted gangsters left.
When they arrived at the Horse Gangs camp, Li Zeyan and MO Ruyue were tied up and forced into the cave.
It was warm inside the cave, but there was a pungent smell of alcohol in the air.
Nio Ruyue felt that her feet were frozen. It took her a long time to recover.
Big brother, third brother, look what gift I brought you.
The man said from afar.
A bearded man and a handsome man stood up.
The two of them looked at the man who had just returned.
Second brother.
Second brother, youre finally back Did your trip go smoothly?
The Third Head couldnt help but ask.
It went quite smoothly. This time, we snatched a lot of food and clothes back.
We also snatched two people, a pretty girl and a pretty boy.
The Second Head was overjoyed and quickly got someone to bring the person he had captured over.
Li Zeyan and MO Ruyue appeared in everyones line of sight.
Countless pairs of eyes carefully sized them up.
Ill give this girl to big brother. As for this pretty boy, what do you think, third brother? If youre satisfied, Ill give it to you. If youre not satisfied, Ill kill it and cook it to feed the dogs. Its a reward for the guard dogs in our vige.
The Second Leader pushed MO Ruyue to the front of the Third Leader.
The Third Head lifted MO Ruyues chin, unable to conceal the adoration in his eyes.
On the other hand, her skin was soft and tender, so she could torture her properly again.
She hoped that this pretty boy would be more hardworking and not be so desperate.
Yes, its indeed soft and tender.
The Third Head was very satisfied with MO Ruyue.
Whats your name?
Third Head asked as he walked around MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue was wrapped in a thickyer of clothing, which had long concealed her curves.
Her feminine beauty could not be seen at all.
My name is MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue said bluntly.
As soon as the voice came out, the three leaders were stunned. This name seemed a little familiar.
I seem to have heard it somewhere
The name of the Devil World Saintess seemed to be MO Ruyue, but the guy in front of him should be a man.
It had nothing to do with the Demonic Saintess, right?
Second Brother, hishis name is MO Ruyue.
The Third Leader immediately took a few steps back. His expression became solemn as he swallowed deeply.
He didnt dare to get close to that guy.
The second-in-charge pretended to be calm. Hes a man, but the Demonic
Saintess MO Ruyue is a woman!
It was impossible for them to be the same person..
Chapter 792 - 792: Apologize
Chapter 792 - 792: Apologize
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Hearing the Second Leaders words, the First Leader pped his hands and said in realization, Thats right. The Saintess of the Demon Realm, MO Ruyue, is a woman, and he is a man. How could he be the Saintess of the Demon Realm, MO Ruyue?
And so what if shes the saintess of the demon world? I heard that that woman is only at the foundation establishment stage. Were all at the jindan stage.
After the First Leader said that, the Second Leader and Third Leader instantly werent as afraid as before.
They all felt that what their Chief said made sense.
Big brother is right. We are all at the Golden Core stage. Why should we be afraid of a small Foundation Establishment?
The Second Leader said confidently.
MO Ruyue curled her lips and called out softly, Ghostly.
When the mountain ghost heard MO Ruyues voice, it immediately came out of MO Ruyues clothes and cut the rope with its sharp ws.
MO Ruyue regained her freedom without the ropes.
Youre right, youre all at the Golden Core stage, and Im only at the Foundation stage.
In the blink of an eye, MO Ruyue, who had been tied up, broke free from the ropes and looked at the three men in front of her with a smile.
MO Ruyues smile deepened.
She silently took out a brick and casually weighed it in her hand. You, are you really the Devil World Saintess, MO Ruyue?
When the Third Head spoke, he could not even straighten his tongue.
Have von ever seen a man named MO Ruyue? MO Ruyue coughed lightly.
Also, my voice has already returned to normal. Isnt that enough to prove that Im a woman?
Previously, she had deliberately lowered her voice. Although she was a little androgynous, with her attire, it was easy for people to feel that she was a man.
This way, it would be easier to hide.
Big, big brother, what should we do now? The Third Leader immediately panicked.
This woman was really MO Ruyue!
Whats there to be afraid of? Were at the Golden Core Realm, and shes only at the Foundation Establishment Realm.
The First Master pulled out his saber and charged at MO Ruyue.
The Chiefs entire body was suffused with a green light, and the tip of his saber carried a baleful aura, as if no one was his match.
MO Ruyue spread out her arms and flew backward for a distance, mainly to increase the distance between them so as not to hurt Li Zeyan.
When the Second and Third Heads saw this, they quickly took out their weapons.
The second master is a spiral knife, throwing it in the air and spinning it back into his hand.
The Third Leader had a ck ck iron sword. When he swept it over, the ck sword wind could leave a very obvious mark on the ground.
With the strength of the three Jindan, they did not believe that they could not defeat a foundation establishment demon saintess.
The Great Master looked at the brick in MO Ruyue!s hand and couldnt help but mock, As the Saintess of the Demon Realm, do you only have a brick in your hand?
A brick is more than enough to deal with you.
MO Ruyue sneered and gripped the brick in her hand tightly.
In fact, she had already used the safest method, which was also the most likely way to win.
These men in front of her were at least at the Golden Core stage, and there were three of them. She had to be careful.
Youre boasting shamelessly. Let us teach you a lesson today.
The Second Head berated and threw the spiral knife at MO Ruyue.
The spiral knife made an ear-piercing sound as it brushed past MO Ruyue.
Li Zeyan looked at the scene in front of him and felt a little nervous.
The hands by her side clenched into fists unnaturally.
Hillghost came to Li Zeyans side and wanted to untie him. However, when he thought about how this guy had bullied him in the past, Hillghost hesitated. Li Zeyan lowered his head and looked at Hillghost.What are you waiting for?
Hillghost turned his head and pretended not to see Li Zeyan.
With such a bad attitude, he wouldnt untie this guy.
Damn it, Mountain Ghost! You
Li Zeyan gritted his teeth. Hillghost was ignoring him.
Forget it, he didnt need Hillghosts help.
With a little force, the hemp rope on his body broke into several pieces.
Seeing Li Zeyan struggle free, Hillghost quickly left.
In case Li Zeyan dealt with it again.
MO Ruyue did not see what was happening. She was dealing with three Golden Core mounted gangsters.
Hiding from one side to the other, from the other side to the other, he finally figured out their n.
The Third Heads sword wind swept over. MO Ruyue flew up, and the stone squat under her feet shattered into pieces.
MO Ruyue threw a brick at the Third Head.
The Third Leaders eyes were filled with contempt. This woman actually wanted to use a brick to deal with him!
She was looking down on him too much.
He swung his sword, ready to smash the brick.
Lets see what else this woman can use to deal with them.
The sword wind that was sent out came into contact with the brick, but the brick did not shatter. Instead, it bounced back the sword wind that was sent out.
How is that possible?
When the third head saw this situation, his pupils suddenly constricted. Clearly, he did not expect this brick to be so powerful.
He narrowly dodged the sword wind, but the corner of his clothes was still cut open.
A crack appeared in the original ce.
The Third Head lowered his head and looked, and a chill ran down his spine.
If he was a little slower, the consequences would be unimaginable.
How could this womans brick be so powerful?
He had never seen such a powerful brick before.
Eldest Brother, Second Brother, watch out for the brick in her hand.
The third head immediately spoke warily.
His expression became extremely solemn.
When the First Leader and Second Leader heard that, the two of them immediately became careful.
However, MO Ruyue was using the brick as a shield. No matter how they attacked MO Ruyue, all the skills and moves they used were reflected back.
All of themnded on their bodies.
The more they attacked MO Ruyue, the more damage they received.
Not long after, they were all injured.
They might not believe it, but they were injured by his own moves.
That woman had never even touched them.
How could this be!
What exactly is this brick?
The Great Master and Second Master did not dare to continue attacking MO Ruyue.
Because no matter how they attacked, the one who was injured in the end was still himself.
Didnt you look down on my brick? Now you know how powerful my brick is, right?
MO Ruyue slightly raised her eyebrows and tilted her head. She looked at the three men in front of her with a teasing expression.
She took a step forward, and the three men took a step back.
They seemed to be extremely afraid of MO Ruyue.
Hearing MO Ruyues mocking words, the three mens faces turned pale.
However, they were powerless to refute this woman.
The second-in-charge nced at Li Zeyan from the corner of his eye.
He rolled his eyes and immediately came up with a n.
In a sh, he appeared beside Li Zeyan and held him hostage.
He used Li Zeyan to threaten MO Ruyue. Donte any closer. If youe any closer, Ill kill him.
The First Leader and Third Leader gave the Second Leader an affirmative look.
The second head was still smarter.
Li Zeyans face darkened, and his body turned cold. Silver ancient tattoos appeared on his skin.
Let go of my brother!
MO Ruyues face darkened slightly.
How dare he use Li Zeyan to threaten her.
These guys were extraordinarily bold.
If you dare toe over, we will kill him.
The second-in-charges spiral knife was ced on Li Zeyans neck. As long as he exerted force, Li Zeyan would immediately be beheaded.
MO Ruyue held the brick andpromised,Okay, I wonte over. 1 apologize for my previous actions, okay? As long as you dont hurt my brother.
The three of them felt a little strange about MO Ruyuespromise and concession.
However, he couldnt tell what was strange about it..
Chapter 793 - 793: Mouse Cave
Chapter 793 - 793: Mouse Cave
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Im sorry, the three of you.
MO Ruyue bowed at the three of them.
The moment she lowered her head, the corners of her mouth curled up uncontrobly.
The three men looked at each other. MO Ruyue had apologized so easily?
Suddenly, there was a loud bang outside as a bolt of lightning struck in.
The lightning split into three and struck the three leaders.
The power of the lightning made their legs go weak, and they knelt on the ground.
How did this happen?
The boss leaned on his long saber, and the electric current all over his body made him unable to withstand it.
The second-in-charge supported himself with both hands, the spiral knife in his hand had long fallen.
The Third Leaders face was pale, and his entire body could not help but twitch.
As expected of a jindan, you can actually speak.
MO Ruyue toyed with the brick as she walked towards the three men.
He threw the brick in his hand up and caught it again. He looked like a yboy as he walked towards the three men step by step.
Even the three Golden Core experts were no match for MO Ruyue, and the subordinates who were just there to watch did not dare to provoke MO Ruyue.
Unless they didnt want to live anymore, they would charge forward.
Didnt you see that even the head of the family was dying?
You, what do you want to do?
The Second Head looked up at MO Ruyue, his voice trembling. MO Ruyue raised her brick and smashed it at the Second Leader.
Second Brother.
Second Brother.
The two leaders at the side shouted.
MO Ruyue had a yful smile on her face as she said faintly, Dont worry. Its your turn next. t
As she spoke, she walked towards the boss and smashed him with a brick. The boss fainted on the ground.
Thest one was the Third Head. MO Ruyue did not hold back and did the same thing.
Little guy.
MO Ruyue ced the brick in her hand into her backpack. She probably didnt need the brick for the time being.
Only thebination of heavens punishment and the brick could deal with a Jindan Stage cultivator. If she wanted to deal with a Yuanying Stage cultivator, thebination of heavens punishment and the brick might not be able to deal with her unless her cultivation was at the Jindan Stage.
She had just advanced to the Foundation Building realm, and the Golden Core realm was too far away for her.
Li Zeyan had nned to expose himself, but his sister had saved him in time.
Sister
Zeyan, are you alright?
Hearing Li Zeyan!s voice, MO Ruyue snapped back to her senses and turned to look at Li Zeyan.
There was a hint of concern in her eyes.
Li Zeyan shook his head and said, Sister, Im fine. What should I do with these guys?
MO Ruyue nced at the three men on the ground and silently took out the two swords, Heaven Splitting Sword and Ghost Sense, from her storage ring.
He walked up to the three unconscious men and used the sword in his hand to draw a few strokes on them.
Sister, should we kill them?
Li Zeyan asked as a bloodthirsty killing intent shed in the depths of his eyes.
He was very interested in fresh blood.
MO Ruyue shook her head and kept her sword.
A good idea came to his mind.
Not killing?
Li Zeyan asked doubtfully. Sister Ruyue had just taken out her sword and put it away.
MO Ruyue nodded. I wont kill him. It wont be good if the blood sshes out and dirties this ce.
Hmm?
Li Zeyan didnt quite understand.
He didnt know what his sister was hesitating about.
We have nowhere to go now. Its snowy outside and there are people chasing after me. This ce is so hidden and warm. Why dont we stay here for now and wait for the storm to pass before going out?
Nio Ruyue suggested.
Of course, these three men could not be let off so easily.
Alright, Ill listen to you.
He obeyed his sisters orders without caring if what his sister said was right or wrong.
Obedience is right!
What about them?
Li Zeyan pointed at the three men on the ground.
MO Ruyue raised her head slightly and said to the mounted gangsters outside,lf you dont want to die, hurry up ande over.
Upon hearing MO Ruyues voice, a group of mounted gangsters hesitated for a moment before they came in shyly.
When the bandits saw their leader fall to the ground, they couldnt bear to see him.
He thought that he would bring back a weak civilian.
In the end, he brought back a female devil who was going to kill him.
It was useless to regret now.
The she-devil had already beaten the three of them to death.
The leader of the bandits knelt down before MO Ruyue and begged for mercy, Female Bodhisattva, please spare my life!
Female Bodhisattva, please spare us. We didnt do anything.
Female Bodhisattva, please spare my life!
MO Ruyues mouth twitched when she heard the shouts of these mounted gangsters.
However, she did not intend to kill these mounted gangsters. After all, there were so many people. Killing them would be tiring.
l can spare you, but you have to listen to me obediently.
Female Bodhisattva, whatever you say, we will listen to you.
Everyone immediately expressed their stance. Even the three leaders had been beaten down, so what room did they have to struggle?
He who understands the times is a wise man. Its better to quickly surrender and express your stance.
To avoid being killed by mistake.
MO Ruyue didnt expect these mounted gangsters to be so tactful, so she didnt have to deal with them.
She walked up to the main seat in the big hall. There was a tiger skin under her butt. She sat on it very softly.
First of all, dont call me Bodhisattva.
Then what should I call it?
The bandits knelt on the ground and looked up at the queen-like MO Ruyue.
This woman was very strong. Her foundation establishment state strength had defeated the strength of three golden core state cultivators. Just thinking about it was terrifying.
He had never seen such a powerful person.
They were also at the Foundation Establishment stage, so why was the difference so great?
Indeed,paring people was infuriating.
Call me Queen.
MO Ruyue rubbed her chin and pondered for a while. She actually didnt know what to call herself. Anyway, she couldnt call herself Bodhisattva.
Of course, she couldnt be called the Saintess.
Calling her Saintess would easily attract people from the Demon Realm.
Alright, Your Majesty. Your Majesty, please ept our bows.
With that, the group of mounted gangsters bowed to MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue lifted her chin slightly. Why did she feel that being a queen was better than being a saintess?
The queen was supreme, and she had a group of underlings to serve her.
There was still a demon above the saintess. She was too controlled by others.
MO Ruyue stood up and asked the bandit leader,You,e here.
Queen, what can I do for you?
The leader of the mounted gangsters stood up and carefully walked towards MO Ruyue.
They were very nervous. They had already surrendered. The Queen would not do anything to them, right?
Whats your name?
MO Ruyue asked as she sized up the man in front of her.
The man hesitated for a moment and quickly said,My name is Fan Jian.
What? Acting cheap?
MO Ruyue thought that she had misheard him and hurriedly asked.
This one is called Fan Jian.
Uh
MO Ruyue was at a loss for words as she listened to the self-introduction.
So be it.
As long as people didnt act cheap.
Queen, do you have any orders? Fan Jian asked.
What is this stronghold called? Your Majesty, this ce is not a stockade.
Fan Jian answered carefully. Not a stockade? Whats that?
This is a hole.
..Mo Ruyue wiped her forehead and said,What I mean is, what is the name of this cave?
This b * tch didnt seem to be very smart.
How could he still have the cultivation of the foundation establishment state?
This hole is called the mouse hole.
Lao, rat hole?
MO Ruyues lips twitched..
Chapter 794 - 794: The Way to Make Money
Chapter 794 - 794: The Way to Make Money
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Yes, Rat Cave. Because our Chief is called Rat Glory, this cave is called Rat
Glory.
Rat poison?
Oh, its not poison medicine, its dazzling glory.
Fan Jian exined.
MO Ruyue frowned slightly and said, From now on, this ce wont be called a rat hole. Change my name!
Since the owner had changed, the name had to be changed as well. What name should we change, Your Majesty? Fan Jian asked curiously. Do you have any objections? Or perhaps everyone should think about it. MO Ruyue couldnt think of a name for it, but it definitely couldnt be Rat Cave.
Rat hole, who was he mocking? Your Majesty, how about we call it Toad Cave?
Do I look like a toad to you?
MO Ruyue red at Fan Jian. This guy didnt seem to have any culture.
He was very curious about how this guys foundation establishment strength came about.
No, no, no. The Queen is not like a toad.
Fan Jian quickly shook his head.
At this moment, another bandit said,Your Majesty, how about we call it
Beauty Cave?
It doesnt sound good!
MO Ruyue looked at the silent Li Zeyan. Zeyan, what do you think it should be called?
Why dont we call it Sister Cave? Li Zeyan said without hesitation.
Next.
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes.
Fan Jian then said,Why dont we call it Tiger Cave?
You said that this queen is a tigress?
MO Ruyue raised her eyebrows slightly.
l dont dare, I dont dare. This subordinate definitely doesnt mean that.
Fan Jian hurriedly waved his hand.
He only felt that the tiger was fierce, and the queen was also very fierce.
Comparing the Queen to a tiger, everyone would be afraid.
l really cant count on you bunch of fish who slipped through the nine years ofpulsory education.
Ill think about it myself.
MO Ruyue shook her head and returned to her seat.
In the end, MO Ruyue changed the name of the cave to Fairy Cave. She immediately felt that Fairy Cave was of a higher grade.
At least, it was better than a rat hole or a tiger hole.
Right, how many mounted gangsters are there in our cave?
Nio Ruyue asked.
Fan Jian thought for a moment and said,There were originally more than forty mounted gangsters. More than ten escaped just now, and now there are only twenty-five left.
Alright then.
The few of you, tie the three of them up and bring up all the treasures here.
MO Ruyuemanded coldly.
Next, it was time for her to amass wealth crazily.
No treasure can be missed.
Fan Jian took out all the treasures of the three leaders. There were boxes of gold, silver, jewelry, and all kinds of weapons.
MO Ruyue had no use for weapons.
Thus, she distributed the weapons to Fan Jian and the others.
Your Majesty, these are top-notch weapons!
Thats right, Ill give it to you. You can take a few things that are convenient for you to use.
MO Ruyue looked indifferent.
Your Majesty, I dont think so.
Fan Jianhuan didnt dare to ask for them. After all, these weapons were the special collection of the Third Master.
Even if the leader was reluctant to use it, he would not let them use it.
The weapons in their hands were all ordinary weapons.
The queen was actually so generous as to let them use their weapons. She was instantly moved.
Why not? If you dont want it, then forget it.
Yes, yes, yes. As long as its something the Queen gives us, well take it.
Fan Jian quickly took down the weapon he had long liked. At this moment, he still could not believe it.
When the others saw Fan Jian take out his weapon, they no longer held back and took out their favorite weapons.
He could not believe that these weapons were actually in their hands.
These were the treasured weapons of the three previous leaders. MO Ruyue only epted her as a treasure and did not care about trash.
l have a very puzzled question. Why are your cultivation levels so high?
MO Ruyue asked the question in her heart as she watched everyone raise their weapons.
These people were all in their twenties or thirties. They did not look very smart, but they were at the foundation establishment stage.
How did it rise?
Fan Jian scratched his head in embarrassment.
This has to start from a robbery three years ago. On the way back from the robbery, we picked up a sealed box. That box was filled with medicinal pills that could increase cultivation. Later, we shared those medicinal pills and ate them.
It was a coincidence.
However, if you eat more pillster, your cultivation wont be able to increase.
MO Ruyue felt relieved after hearing what he said.
So that was the case. It was said that the cultivation of these guys was too exaggerated.
It was exined clearly now.
Medicinal pills could increase cultivation, but it was also obvious when ones strength was low. When ones cultivation was high, it was not obvious to use medicinal pills to increase cultivation.
In the future, you cant go out and rob the things of innocent people. If anyone dares to rob again, Ill kill them.
MO Ruyue warned.
These people used their cultivation to lord it over the people, and no one cared about them. No wonder they could collect so much money. But if we dont fight for food, what are we going to eat?
You have hands and feet.Mo Ruyue berated.
These men were so young, yet they were willing to degenerate like this?
He just didnt want to work hard.
Although she was also short of money, she had never thought of snatching things from innocent people.
Work?
The men looked at each other. Wouldnt it be too cheap for them to work with their cultivation?
l dont care what you do, but you must not kill, burn, kill, or rob. Otherwise, Ill kill you.
Everyone had their own ways to earn money, so they might not necessarily have to work hard.
Therefore, she did not restrict them from doing manualbor.
Even robbing the rich to help the poor was better than burning, killing, and looting.
No one dared to refute MO Ruyues words.
They had been bandits for too long and didnt know how to turn over a new leaf.
She felt a little awkward.
The three leaders slowly woke up. When they woke up, they found themselves tied to a wooden stake, and their limbs were weak.
Big brother, third brother, how do you feel?
Second brother, I feel weak.
Im also powerless!
The three of them felt limp all over. They had no strength at all and could not use their cultivation.
Otherwise, he could still break free from the rope.
MO Ruyues devilish smile appeared before the three of them.
The three of you are finally awake.
The corners of his mouth curled up slightly as he approached the three of them.
When the three heads saw MO Ruyueing over, their expressions changed drastically.
You, donte over!
You woman, what do you want?
Release us!
The three of them struggled, their bodies devoid of strength.
Fan Jian.
MO Ruyue shouted.
Fan Jian came in from outside and greeted MO Ruyue respectfully, Your Majesty.
Take a few people and strip the three of them naked and throw them into the snow.
Fan Jian was stunned. What should he do?
It was so cold outside. If they were stripped naked and thrown into the snow, they would freeze to death.
What, you dont dare? If you dont dare, Ill strip you naked and throw you into the snow like them.Mo Ruyue threatened.
Fan Jian was still afraid of the three leaders.
l dare, I dare. Ill bring people to strip them naked and throw them into the snow outside.
Fan Jian quickly said.
For the sake of his own life, he could only do this..
Chapter 795 - 795: Performance Show
Chapter 795 - 795: Performance Show
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Fan Jian, how dare you.
The First Leader opened his eyes wide and shouted.
This scared Fan Jian so much that his body trembled.
Fan Jian, you traitor.The Third Head gritted his teeth, wishing he could kill this b * tch.
This Fan Jian had actually sided with that woman.
Fan Jian turned around and said to the chief, Chief, youre just a prisoner now. Of course Im bold.
Then, he retorted to the Third Leader, Im not betraying you. Im a wise man who understands the times. Who asked the three of you to be useless? The strong are respected. Whats wrong with me following the Queen?
The reason why he had be the subordinates of the three heads was because of their strength.
If the three heads did not have any ability, why should he listen to the orders of these three heads?
Female devil, since this guy can betray us, he will betray you sooner orter.
The Second Leader stared at Fan Jian.
Even if he died, he had to drag Fan Jian down with him.
However, MO Ruyue said, I think hes right. The strong are respected, and those who adapt to the times are wise. I agree with his point of view.
Fan Jian had been worried that the Queen would listen to the Second Leaders words and betray him, but he did not expect that the Queen would not listen to the Second Leader.
The Queen was indeed the Queen. She was really bold.
What are you standing there for? MO Ruyue said to Fan Jian.Hurry up and strip her naked and throw her out.
Yes, yes, yes.
Fan Jian came back to his senses and quickly responded.
Fortunately, the three leaders were drugged and could not use their cultivation now. Naturally, they did not have any strength to fight against him.
Otherwise, he really wouldnt have been able to deal with these three leaders.
More than ten people came in, and four people formed groups of four. They worked together to strip the three heads of their clothes and carried them out of the Fairy Cave.
Sister, dont look at them.
Li Zeyan couldnt help but whisper when he saw MO Ruyue staring at the three naked men.
Does sister like to look at naked men?
Otherwise, why would he keep staring at those three guys?
He nced at the three guys. Their figures were average. They were either too muscr, t, or had big bellies. They looked disgusting.
There was no sense of beauty!
He felt that looking at her would pollute his eyes.
He did not know how his sister could bear to watch.
Why?
MO Ruyue asked and looked at Li Zeyan in confusion.
Li Zeyan pursed his lips and said, Those three guys are not good-looking.
Uh, its indeed not pretty.
MO Ruyue nodded in agreement. Then why is Sister still watching?
Just treat it as pork.
MO Ruyue walked out of the room as she spoke. She watched helplessly as her subordinates threw the three naked leaders into the snow.
It was snowing heavily outside, and the sound of the three heads cursing could be heard.
Snowkes fell from the sky and melted on their bodies.
The three of them were shivering from the cold.
They could only squeeze together and transfer heat to each other.
Otherwise, he would have frozen to death long ago.
MO Ruyue stood on top and looked at the three men in the snow pit. She slowly said,How does it feel?
Female devil, dont let us live, or well definitely teach you a lesson. The boss was still moring, baring his fangs and brandishing his ws.
Looking at MO Ruyue, her eyes were filled with anger.
Female devil, I will definitely tear you into pieces one day.
The Second Head also spoke fiercely.
Little did they know that their attitude would only make them die faster.
MO Ruyue had initially thought that she hadmitted a grave sin by doing so.
However, when she heard these guys moring, she knew that either they would die or she would die today.
Therefore, MO Ruyue was determined.
He would rather die than die.
Benevolence to the enemy was cruelty to oneself. That depends on whether you have the chance to survive.
MO Ruyue snorted coldly, her eyes full of disdain.
They were already meat on the chopping board, waiting to be ughtered, but they still took themselves seriously and mored here.
He was really courting death.
Sister, why dont we just kill them?
Li Zeyan looked at the three men in the snow pit and his eyes turned sharp.
That damned fellow still dared to be so arrogant.
He might as well just kill him.
MO Ruyue raised her hand and her red lips parted slightly. Killing them would be too easy on them. Its only painful to feel the arrival of death bit by bit.
As the saying went, killing people was killing their hearts.
Li Zeyan pondered over MO Ruyues words, but he didnt seem to understand.
Brother Zeyan, lets go.
MO Ruyue turned around and ignored the three men in the snow pit.
Let it die on its own.
Whether those three men lived or died depended on fate.
The effectsted for 24 hours. As long as the three men did not freeze to death after 24 hours.
This meant that these three men were not fated to die.
At that time, she was merciful enough to let these men go.
If they couldntst for 24 hours, it meant that they deserved to die.
She was really a kind woman.
MO Ruyue sighed inwardly.
It was about ten degrees below zero.
After returning to the cave, MO Ruyue asked her subordinates to prepare delicious food.
Is this how you roast meat and stew meat?
MO Ruyue looked at the mens rough and dirty hands with a look of disgust.
Isnt it delicious to stew and roast meat like this?
Thats right, Your Majesty. Weve always stewed and roasted meat like this.
Your Your Majesty, this way of roasting meat is delicious.
His subordinates looked up with smiles on their faces.
It was the happiest thing to be able to stay in such a warm ce to eat meat and drink wine in winter.
It was their dream to eat meat inrge pieces and drink wine inrge bowls.
All of you, get up. Youre all younger brothers.
MO Ruyue shook her head. These people were really miserable.
The food was too bad.
It was to boil some raw meat in a big pot, then add some salt. After it was cooked, it was eaten.
Although it was very fragrant, it was not tasty enough.
Sister, I am your younger brother.
Li Zeyan said with some jealousy.
Sweeping away those rough men, they were not worthy of being her sisters younger brother at all.
It was too crude.
MO Ruyue ignored Li Zeyan. The younger brother she was referring to did not mean that younger brother.
Next, MO Ruyue began her performance.
The materials she brought were in the storage ring.
Take the meat to wash first.
MO Ruyue said with a serious expression.
There were still a lot of blood stains on the meat, so he had to wash it first.
But there is no water here. The water in the pool has frozen.
Fan Jian said, not knowing what to do.
MO Ruyue raised her hand and knocked Fan Jians head. Youre really an idiot. Cant you use an iron pot to bring back a pot of snow? Wouldnt snow turn into water when heated?
The snow in this era was very clean, so it was fine to eat it directly.
Oh, oh.
Fan Jian rubbed his head.
He had forgotten that there was such a method.
ording to MO Ruyues instructions, Fan Jian poured some water into a pot and heated it up. Then, he washed the bloodstains off the raw meat.
After the meat was washed, it was MO Ruyues turn to perform.
The people around them quietly watched MO Ruyues actions.
The Queen rolled up her sleeves and took out some bottles from her storage ring.
Looking at these bottles and jars, they should be condiments.
Help me chop this meat into pieces.
Alright, Your Majesty.
Fan Jian responded and then chopped the meat into pieces with a fewckeys.
MO Ruyue removed the fishy smell from the meat, then boiled it, and added some of the condiments she had brought over.
He covered the pot and waited for time.
During this time, MO Ruyue was preparing to roast the meat. The necessary ingredients for roasting the meat must not becking. This way, the roasted meat would smell better..
Chapter 796 - 796: Demon Subduing Array
Chapter 796 - 796: Demon Subduing Array
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
It smells so good.
The Queen is really amazing!
Her Majesty the Queen has gone to the hall and the kitchen. There is no one like her in the world.
Everyone praised Mo Ruyue.
The entire Fairy Cave was filled with the fragrance of meat. The fragrance of meat filled the air, forming a strong contrast with the three heads who were starving and freezing outside.
The three leaders had already squeezed into a pile. They were trembling and gradually lost their body temperature.
It seemed that he would soon freeze to death.
So cold
Big brother, second brother, the three of us wont, wont die here, right? The Third Heads voice was already trembling.
Its all Second Brothers fault. Why did he bring a she-devil back for no reason? If it werent for Second Brother, we wouldnt have been thrown into
the snow pit.
The First Leader pushed the responsibility onto the Second Leader.
The Second Heads teeth were chattering from the cold, and he said, l didnt know she was the Saintess of the Demon World. If I knew she was the Saintess of the Demon World, I wouldnt have brought her back.
This time, it was indeed his fault.
Perhaps they would die in this snowy day.
In the cave, the roast meat and stew were ready.
When the lid of the pot was lifted, there was a pot of boiling red braised pork inside.
Fan Jian swallowed his saliva and asked curiously, Your Majesty, what meat is this?
Before MO Ruyue could say anything, someone beside her shouted,lt should be red braised pork. I remember that my mother used to make red braised pork. It was delicious!
Looking at the braised pork, he couldnt help but think of his deceased mother.
Now, she could no longer eat her mothers braised pork.
Thats right, MO Ruyue replied. This is Red Braised Pork, and this is roasted meat.
Hillghost had long lost hisposure when he smelled the fragrance of meat.
He wished he could dive into the pot and eat his fill.
However, it could not embarrass its master.
Mo Ruyue took some meat and left the rest for Fan Jian and the others.
Everyone drank and ate.
Moreover, it was delicious red braised pork. It tasted delicious.
To be able to eat such delicious food was not in vain.
Everyone was full of praise for MO Ruyues craftsmanship.
Not only was the Queen so powerful, but she also had such craftsmanship.
While they were eating happily, Ming Sihan brought his men to search for MO
Ruyue all over the world.
Its been three days, and theres still no clue!
Ming Sihan ced his hands behind his back and raised his head slightly.
Where is Ruyue?
That woman was so afraid of him that she had disappeared sopletely.
MO Chengfeng and the others didnt have any clues either.
Just as he was looking for MO Ruyue, he coincidentally bumped into Ling Shoumo.
Facing Ling Shoumo, Ming Sihans dark red eyes darkened and he greeted him coldly, Long time no see, Xuanling Sect Master?
Ling Shoumo looked calm.
Enemies were bound to meet on a narrow road. She actually met Ming Sihan here,
Long time no see, Demon Venerable!
Ling Shoumos tone was also very cold.
The two of them looked at each other as if they were about to fight.
There was a trace of smoke in the air.
What is Xuanling Sects Sect Master going to do?
Ling Shoumos figure was reflected in Ming Sihans eyes.
When she was in a bad mood and met someone she didnt want to see, her hand seemed to be a little out of control.
He always wanted to find something to vent.
I am naturally looking for my disciple.
Looking for disciples?
When Ming Sihan heard this, his dark pupils suddenly contracted.
His sword-like brows furrowed tightly.
Who is your disciple?
He asked. He had already guessed it in his heart.
The hands behind him clenched.
He hoped that it was not what he thought.
My disciple, MO Ru Yue!
Ling Shoumo said softly. MO Ruyue was originally a disciple of Xuanling Sect.
The past was, the present was, and the future was.
No matter what happened, it could not change the fact that MO Ruyue was his disciple.
Hearing MO Ruyues name, Ming Sihan couldnt keep his face straight anymore.
Ling Shoumo, you need to be clear about this. MO Ruyue is my beloved disciple. You cant just randomly acknowledge her as your disciple.
Ruyue is the Holy Maiden of the Demon World, not a little disciple of your Xuanling Immortal Sect!
He did not care about Ruyues past. He only cared about Ruyues present, future, and future,
He definitely wouldnt hand Ruyue over to someone else!
Of course, Ling Shoumo was not to be outdone.
Ruyue has called me master before, so she will always be my disciple.
Dream on! Ruyue is mine!
What? The dignified Demon Lord was so concerned about a spy. Was he fascinated by that spy?
None of your business!
So what if he was mesmerized by MO Ruyue?
Although he was a dragon, he had emotions and desires. Unlike this man, who pretended to be aloof and indifferent.
Heh, lets see who finds MO Ruyue first.
Trying to snatch my disciple? Ling Shoumo, youre courting death!
What Ming Sihan wanted was not for anyone to find MO Ruyue first, but for anyone to snatch Ruyue from him to be his enemy.
Naturally, they could not let the enemy off.
Ling Shoumos eyes turned cold when he saw the power of a ck dragon rushing towards him. This man was serious.
Was MO Ruyue that important to him?
To him, MO Ruyue was merely a chess piece in his hands, an inconspicuous little disciple of Xuanling Sect.
Ling Shoumo barely dodged Ming Sihans attack, and the mountain behind him was smashed by the ck dragons power.
Immediately, a piece of dust flew up.
Ming Sihan, dont think that Im afraid of you!
If youre not afraid, then lets fight.
Ming Sihan had been unhappy with Ling Shoumo for a long time. He was worried about hurting Ruyue when they were at Misty Mountain, so he didnt fight with Ling Shoumo for too long.
After all, she was carrying someone in her arms.
Now, his anger had been ignited by Ling Shoumo, and he had to vent it to calm down.
Ill apany you to the end!
Ling Shoumo grunted. There was no fear on his face.
The two of them were both men and dragons. One was dressed in white, had ck hair, and ck eyes, while the other was dressed in ck, had white hair, and dark red eyes.
As soon as the aura was released, the surrounding wind and clouds instantly surged, and the color of heaven and earth changed.
The strong wind swept the leaves and blew their hair. Their hair was messy, but it did not affect their handsome faces.
If Ling Shoumo was the flower on the peak of the snowy mountain, then Ming Sihan was the Manjusaka on the road to Hell.
One had a cold and aloof temperament, while the other had a cold and arrogant temperament.
Ming Sihans body was surrounded by a ck aura. A transparent dragon appeared behind him. The dragon roared and hovered above the two of them.
Ling Shoumos face tensed up. He had almost forgotten that this mans true form was the ck Dragon.
And he was a human.
Ling Shoumo, what do you have to fight me?
Ling Shoumos face darkened. He put his right index finger and middle finger together and muttered, Demon Subduing Array, activate!
A circr golden array spread out from under Ling Shoumos feet. There were all kinds of ancient characters in the array. A mere Demon Subduing Array wants to control me?
A mocking smile appeared on Ming Sihans face.
He flew into the air, his feet off the ground, and the giant dragon behind him swooped down on Ling Shoumo.
The giant ck dragon also rushed towards Ling Shoumo, bringing with it a strong gust of wind that blew up the hem of Ling Shoumos clothes. A golden protective shield also appeared around Ling Shoumos body..
Chapter 797 - 797: Frozen to Death
Chapter 797 - 797: Frozen to Death
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
While Ming Sihan and Ling Shoumo were fighting, a strong gust of wind formed around them. Dark clouds surged in the sky, and the leaves on the ground swayed as if they were about to be uprooted by the wind.
All of the living beings within a ten-mile radius had their internal organs shattered. This was the result of a true battle between experts.
Previously in Ethereal Mountain, the two of them did not really use their strength.
If they fought there, more people might be injured.
The golden protective shield cracked bit by bit.
Ling Shoumo gritted his teeth and looked at Ming Sihan coldly.
Was this man prepared to perish together with him?
With a bang, the two of them were bounced off by a powerful force.
Ling Shoumo knelt on one knee, clutching his chest, and spat out a mouthful of blood.
There was a tinge of chaos amidst the waste.
He seemed to be in great pain.
Ming Sihan wasnt any better.
He stood where he was, but there was still a trace of blood at the corner of his mouth.
He raised his hand and used his thumb to wipe away the blood at the corner of his mouth, leaving a faint mark on his fair skin, making him look even more evil.
Ling Shoumo, your strength is only so-so.
He opened his mouth to mock. Was this the most powerful man in Xuanling Immortal Sect?
He was also the most powerful man in all the immortal sects?
Ling Shoumo slowly stood up from the ground and restrained his breath. Same here!
At least, Ming Sihan was bleeding.
However, there was one thing that he had to admit. Ming Sihan was indeed stronger than him.
However, it was only a little.
At this moment, two groups of people came over.
One team was from the Demon World, and the other team was from the Xuanling Immortal Sect.
The leaders of the Demon Realm were Ye Junlin and Ye Feng.
The leader of the Mystic Spirit Immortal Sect was Zhao Xin.
Master!
Demon Venerable!
They ran to their respective camps.
Along the way, they saw many dead animals nearby. They also saw that the leaves around them had fallen to the ground, and many trees had be bald.
There was only a bare branch standing there, looking very pitiful.
There must have been a huge battle here!
When they arrived, they only saw Ling Shoumo from Xuanling Immortal Sect and Ming Sihan from the Demon Realm.
When he saw the two of them, he knew without thinking that something had happened here.
Master, why are you bleeding?
Xin Zhaos face turned cold when he saw the bloodstains on Ling Shoumos sleeve,
It looked very serious.
He nced at the ck-robed man with silver hair. It should be the doing of the Demon Lord.
Lets go, take me away.
Ling Shoumo didnt want to waste any more time with this man.
Even if they fought, both sides would suffer. There was no need. It would be better to find Mo Ruyue instead of wasting this time.
Yes, Master!
Xin Zhao withdrew his gaze from Ming Sihan.
Then, he left with Ling Shoumo.
Ye Junlin watched Zhao Xin and Ming Sihan leave and asked,Demon Venerable, should we chase after them?
No need.
Ming Sihan stopped her.
Ling Shoumos injuries were much more serious than his this time.
Have you heard from Yuyue? He asked.
He only wanted to know where Ruyue was. He had to find her before Ling Shoumo did.
That fellow wanted to snatch Ruyue away from him.
This was absolutely impossible.
l did find some clues, but Im not sure if theyre true or not.
Ye Yunfeng pursed his lips, his expression carrying a trace of solemnity.
Tell me.
Ming Sihans eyes turned cold, but whether or not the clues were true, he had to follow the clues to find the truth.
Ye Yunfeng then said, Weve looked through many inns and obtained some simr clues. Its said that a pair of siblings went north. Theyre not from the north.
A pair of siblings?
Yes, this subordinate is guessing that Junior Sister Ruyue and Li Zeyan have swapped identities. Otherwise, why would we not have any progress in investigating the siblings?
Ye Yunfeng exined.
If that was really the case, then it could only be said that Junior Sister Ruyue was too smart.
He actually knew how to hide it.
This made it even more difficult for them to find clues.
It had been so many days, but they still hadnt found any clues about Ruyue and Li Zeyan.
Are they heading north?
Ming Sihans dark red pupils contracted.
This hateful woman, please dont let him catch you.
Damn heart thief!
This is also a clue that our subordinates have found. Were not sure if the siblings are Junior Sister Ruyue and Li Zeyan!
Whether its true or not, I have to find that pair of siblings.
He would know if it was true or not after he found it.
Demon Lord, you seem to be injured. Do you want to go back and heal yourself?
Ye Yunfeng looked at the seductive bloodstains at the corner of the Demon Lords mouth and could not help but ask worriedly.
However, the Xuanling Sect Master seemed to be more seriously injured.
The Demon Lords injuries did not seem to be that serious.
Theres no need. Im going to the north now.
Ming Sihan looked in the direction of the north, and his eyes became even more determined.
Thus, the group set off in a grandiose manner and headed north.
Of course, Ming Sihan couldnt wait any longer.
He didnt follow behind the rest of the group. Instead, he headed north alone.
Right now, he only wanted to find MO Ruyue.
He wanted to ask why that woman had left.
What a heartless woman, did she have a conscience?
Fairy Cave
MO Ruyue was eating and drinking with her subordinates. Life was so happy.
He finally understood why he wanted to be the leader of the Mountain Bandits.
Life was free and unrestrained. He could do whatever he wanted, and no one could control him.
Reporting to the Queen.
Speak.
MO Ruyue nced at the man who came in from outside and nodded slightly. She leaned back in her chair and enjoyed the show prepared by the group of rough men.
Although there was nothing to see, it was still quite funny.
A womans performance might be elegant and beautiful.
However, the performance of this group of crude old men was extremely funny.
The three prisoners have been frozen to death.
Frozen to death?
MO Ruyue stood up and shook her head helplessly.
It seemed that even the heavens did not want to let the three of them off.
She thought for a moment and said,Then just dig a hole and bury them.
After all, she was kind at heart and would not do such a thing.
At least he had left the corpses of those three fellows intact.
There shouldnt be anyone more merciful than her.
He was too kind. MO Ruyue felt sorry for her own kindness.
Yes, Your Majesty.
The subordinate replied and left.
Their queen was really too kind. She actually asked people to dig a hole and bury those three fellows.
Those three fellows must have umted merit in their previous lives to be able to receive such good treatment.
Li Zeyan watched MO Ruyue hanging out with a group of men all day long and felt very jealous.
However, there were no other women here other than the men.
Fan Jian found MO Ruyue and said, Your Majesty, we dont have much food left. We might not be able tost three days. Should we go out and rob people?
MO Ruyues expression instantly turned cold.
Fan Jian seemed to realize that he had said something he shouldnt have said, so he quickly said,Its not robbery, but robbing the rich to help the poor.
At the same time, he could get some benefits for himself..
Chapter 799 - 799: You Have to Be Accountable to Others
Chapter 799 - 799: You Have to Be ountable to Others
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Li Zeyan walked over and nced at the snowboard in his subordinates hand. He said, Sister, I want to snowboard too.
When the subordinate heard this, he quickly gave the snowboard in his hand to Li Zeyan.
Here.
The boy in front of him was the Queens younger brother. He was someone he could not offend.
It was better to give the skis to Li Zeyan. They could make new skis themselves.
There was no need to snatch a snowboard from the Queens brother.
Moreover, they felt that there was something wrong with the Queens younger brother.
At times, he would show them a ferocious look like a wild beast.
It made the back of ones neck turn cold.
Li Zeyan smiled with satisfaction after he got the snowboard.
These people knew what was going on.
Be careful when you go out to y. Dont get hurt.
Mo Ruyue reminded him worriedly. After all, Li Zeyan was still a child.
What if he got injured?
It was better to be careful.
Li Zeyan replied, Sister, I know. I wont get hurt.
Wow, what a big wolf!
This is a white wolf!
Where did you get the white wolf?
The two subordinates behind finally carried the white wolf back. Its body was already wet from the snowkes.
The two of them ced the white wolf in the hall, panting.
This white wolf was not light. In addition, the snow outside was very thick, so it was especially difficult to carry it.
Li Zeyan looked at the white wolf and frowned.
She asked curiously, Where did this white wolfe from?
Oh, the queen found it in the snow. The white wolf was injured, so the queen asked us to bring it back.
The white wolf was ced on the ground. At this moment, the white wolf did not struggle.
Perhaps he did not have the strength to struggle at all. It was difficult for him to breathe.
Originally, everyone wanted to go ski, but when they saw the white wolf that they had brought back, everyone stayed around the white wolf.
Sister asked you to bring it back?
Li Zeyan raised his eyes and looked in MO Ruyues direction.
His eyes turned dark.
Yes, I am.
The subordinate replied honestly.
At this moment, a subordinate said to MO Ruyue,Queen, are we going to cook this white wolf and eat it?
Steamed or braised?
l think its better to roast it with charcoal!
His subordinates were already discussing how to cook the white wolf.
They had eaten a lot of animal meat, but they had never eaten the meat of a white wolf.
The white wolf listened to the mens discussion and suddenly opened its sharp eyes.
Did this group of people want to eat him?
It wanted to stand up, but it couldnt.
Was he going to be eaten by these people today?
To think that the Wolf King in the north would end up like this!
The white wolf hissed.
Pork, chicken, duck, fish, and beef are usually not enough for you? He actually had designs on the white wolf!
MO Ruyue scolded. She had no intention of eating the white wolf.
These guys were dreaming. They actually wanted to eat the white wolf.
It was as if she was mistreating them.
Didnt he have a good life with her?
A group of hungry men.
After being scolded by MO Ruyue, the men finally shut their mouths.
They felt that this wolf was quite strong and should be delicious, so
They didnt expect the Queen to scold them because of the white wolf.
If they had known that the Queen cared so much about the white wolf, they would not have said that.
Which one of you has some medical skills?
MO Ruyue looked at the crowd.
She did not have any medical skills and could not save the white wolf.
She could only look at her subordinates.
Everyone looked at each other and finally locked onto a man.
Your Majesty, I do know a little medicine, but I havent saved this beast yet.
A man replied carefully.
Then youll be the one to save the white wolf. MO Ruyue nodded.
At least this man was professional.
Since he could save people, he might be able to save the white wolf as well.
The white wolfs eyes reflected the womans figure and finally closed its eyes slowly.
It was too tired and needed to rest.
Li Zeyan stared at the white wolf, his brows unable to rx.
He wished for the wolf to die.
A mountain ghost was already annoying enough, and now there was a white wolf.
Her hands clenched by her side.
The subordinate checked the white wolfs body, and his face tightened. He said,Queen, there are several broken bones on this white wolfs body, and its legs are broken
MO Ruyue frowned slightly as she listened to her subordinates report.
Is there still hope?
If he couldnt be saved, then he would arrange for him to be put to death.
To avoid unbearable pain.
MO Ruyue thought to herself.
Yes, itll be fine after a period of time.
The subordinate replied. This kind of wound was not very serious.
The white wolf probably had internal injuries.
If he really had internal injuries, he would be helpless.
Alright, youll be in charge of treating the white wolf.
Yes, Your Majesty.
MO Ruyue was relieved to hand over the white wolf to her subordinate.
At night, the snow stopped, and a full moon hung in the sky.
The bright moonlight shone on the white snow, and the entire snowy mountain became sparkling and dazzling.
Mo Ruyue couldnt fall asleep. She had a nagging feeling that this ce wasnt safe, and she had enough of the freezing weather.
At first, seeing snow was very refreshing, and he wished it would snow every day.
However, after a few days, she got tired of it and felt that the snow was nothing more than this.
She didnt want to stay here any longer.
Now that she was wanted, she would feel danger if she stayed in a ce for too long.
Only by constantly moving and changing identities would he not be caught.
Sister, why arent you resting yet?
Li Zeyan!s voice sounded from behind MO Ruyue.
Mo Ruyue turned around and saw Li Zeyaning out.
Li Zeyan was getting more and more handsome. She had almost forgotten how he looked when she first saw him.
She only knew that Li Zeyan was skinny and malnourished at that time.
Moreover, Li Zeyan wasnt called Li Zeyan at that time.
l cant sleep.
MO Ruyue retracted her gaze from Li Zeyan and did not probe further into the changes in Li Zeyan.
She only felt that Li Zeyan was fair and tender because of her.
After all, they ate and drank well every day, and they didnt have to work. Naturally, it was easy for them to be raised until they were fair and tender.
Is there something on your mind?
What could make her sister unable to sleep?
Li Zeyan really wanted to know.
l think we should leave this ce. Staying here for too long will make me feel unsafe.
MO Ruyue said thoughtfully.
Looking at the snow in the distance, the air was filled with a biting cold wind that made people lose their sleepiness.
The more the cold wind blew, the more sober he became.
Sister, no matter where you go, Ill follow. I hope you wont abandon me. Li Zeyan didnt have many thoughts about staying here or leaving.
Anyway, it was good that he could stay by his sisters side.
The rest was not important.
Dont worry. No matter where 1 go, Ill bring you along.
Mo Ruyue said firmly.
How could she abandon Li Zeyan?
Since he had already brought her out, he definitely had to be responsible for her.
Sister, when will we leave this ce?
Li Zeyan knew that his sister wanted to leave the Fairy Cave, but he didnt know when she was going to leave.
Where would they go after leaving the Fairy Cave?
These were all problems that needed to be nned in advance.
Otherwise, he could only continue to wander..
Chapter 800 - 800: We Can’t bear to Let You Leave
Chapter 800 - 800: We Cant bear to Let You Leave
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
l havent thought about that yet, but Ive thought about where to go next. Where are we going?
The south, the south where its like spring all year round. Its very warm there, not as cold as here.
She was already tired of ying with snowkes. Now, she missed the south where birds sang and flowers smelled fragrant. It was like spring all year round.
Okay, sister likes it. Lets go there.
Zeyan, what ce do you like?
Upon hearing Li Zeyans words, MO Ruyue turned her gaze to him.
She was the one who said that she liked the ce, and Li Zeyan chose to
follow her preferences.
Actually, she hoped that Li Zeyan had his own preferences.
Li Zeyan couldnt possibly like whatever she liked, right? She even liked men. Did Li Zeyan have to like men too?
Zeyan likes wherever Sister likes.
To him, it didnt matter where he liked. What was important was where his sister was and what she liked.
He ced his sister first.
MO Ruyue nced at Li Zeyan and said, You should have your own interests and hobbies. You cant always be like me.
But
Li Zeyan hesitated.
He had always liked his sister.
Naturally, he would like what his sister liked.
What was so bad about that? Li Zeyan couldnt understand.
But what?
I just want the same thing that Sister likes.
Li Zeyan said softly with a hint of grievance in his voice.
Then I like men, and you like men too?
Mo Ruyue asked. She wanted to hear what Li Zeyan had to say.
For a moment, Li Ze was at a loss for words.
Who knew that his sister would ask this question? This really stumped him.
Zeyan doesnt like men, but he likes sister.
Forget about men. He liked his sister more.
Sister, if we leave, what should we do with the people here?
Li Zeyans face turned slightly red and he quickly changed the topic.
MO Ruyue thought for a moment and said, Of course Im dismissing them. I cant possibly bring a bunch of men to the south, can l?
With a group of men by her side, it was easier for her identity to be discovered.
For the sake of safety, those men should disperse on the spot.
Is that so?
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Li Zeyans eyes shed with joy. He had thought that Sister Ruyue was going to bring those men with her.
Those unsightly men could finally disappear from her sisters side. Of course. Dont you think its troublesome to bring so many people? MO Ruyue said without hesitation. She was unwilling to bring so many people with her anyway.
Moreover, these men were not young anymore.
Its quite troublesome. I support my sisters approach.
Li Zeyan was in full agreement.
With a sudden change of topic, a white figure shed across Li Zeyans mind.
What about the white wolf?
The white wolf will naturally stay by my side. Its the first time Ive seen such a good-looking white wolf.
The wolves he had seen before were all big bad wolves. He had never seen a white wolf.
Therefore, MO Ruyue felt that the white wolf was very rare, so she naturally wanted to keep it by her side.
Keep the white wolf by your side?
Li Zeyans face tightened. His sister wanted to keep the white wolf by her side. For a moment, he felt that his position was about to be reced by the white wolf.
Yes, 1 am.
But the white wolf is injured and cant leave with us immediately. The white wolf needs to rest well!
Li Zeyan wanted MO Ruyue to give up the idea of bringing the white wolf with her.
This white wolf must be here to snatch his sister away from him.
Its fine. Its just some superficial injuries. When the timees, well take the carriage. The white wolf doesnt need to hurry.
MO Ruyue seemed determined to bring the white wolf along.
Looking at his sisters smiling face, Li Zeyans heart was filled with worry.
Therefore, his sister wanted to leave with the white wolf.
Its gettingte. Even if I cant sleep, I still have to go back and lie down.
After MO Ruyue finished speaking, she patted Li Zeyans arm and turned to leave.
Only a beautiful back view was left.
Looking at her beautiful back, Li Zeyan let out a long sigh.
In the end, his sister still had to leave with the white wolf.
That damned white wolf must have deliberately appeared beside his sister to arouse her pity.
Li Zeyan was in no mood to sleep.
Therefore, he came to the white wolfs side alone.
The white wolf, who was sleeping, suddenly felt danger approaching. It slowly opened its cold eyes.
He immediately saw Li Zeyan.
There was a familiar aura on this fellows body. It seemed to be a demonic beast like him.
I dont know why youre getting close to my sister. But let me tell you, as long as Im by my sisters side, Ill never let you take my ce!
Li Zeyan warned coldly, hoping that the white wolf had some self-awareness.
The white wolfs eyes darkened. Was he being warned?
He did not expect that he would be warned one day.
Was she telling him not to get close to that woman during the day?
Very good. The more he was not allowed to get close to someone, the more he wanted to get close to them.
He wanted to see what this guy could do to him.
Li Zeyan did not know if the white wolf had listened to what he had said. He hoped that the white wolf had listened.
Early in the morning, MO Ruyue had gathered everyone to announce a very important matter.
The men yawned. They didnt know what the Queen was going to announce. They were all drowsy, as if they hadnt woken up.
At this moment, the fur outside finally lit up.
Usually, everyone would sleep untilte in the morning.
Today was the earliest day she woke up.
Your Majesty, everyone is here. What do you want to announce?
Fan Jianqiang asked respectfully.
MO Ruyue sat cross-legged on the main seat, her sharp eyes sweeping across the crowd.
Im preparing to leave the Fairy Cave.
The men were stunned.
They thought that they were hallucinating and had misheard the voice.
How could the Queen leave the Fairy Cave? What did you just say, Your Majesty? Fan Jian asked. l said I was going to leave the Fairy Cave.
MO Ruyue said helplessly. Were these people in a daze?
He couldnt hear what she said?
Leave the Fairy Cave?
Fan Jian opened his mouth in a daze and exchanged nces with the people around him.
Then, he hurriedly asked,Queen, where are you going after leaving the Fairy Cave?
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes and pondered for a while, but decided not to tell them her purpose.
He didnt want to expose his tracks and be caught.
If nothing goes wrong, 1 should go to the west because there is a desert in the west. I want to ride a camel in the desert.
She gave a fake address to prevent herself from being found.
He was really too clever.
MO Ruyue was secretly delighted.
Queen, will you take us to the west?
Fan Jian was a little reluctant. If possible, he still wanted to follow the Queen.
Following the Queen, he had a good life.
No, there are too many of you. After I leave, Ill leave this cave to you. Mo Ruyue didnt n to leave with a group of people.
It was not good for a group of people to bring their families along.
Queen, we cant bear to see you leave!
Fan Jian suddenly cried, his face full of reluctance.
He didnt want to be a Cave Master at all, he just wanted to leave with the Queen.
Queen, can you bring us along?
The sleepiness on the mens faces was gone, and they all revealed reluctance..
Chapter 801 - 801: He Can’t Be Ungrateful
Chapter 801 - 801: He Cant Be Ungrateful
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue held her forehead helplessly and said, Why dont you all disperse on the spot? Those who have hands and feet can find some work. At least they can make a living.
Also, split this money among yourselves.
She took out the money that she had not spent before.
It was all the wealth of the three heads.
After spending a little, they split the rest among themselves. Everyone went back to their own homes and found their own mothers.
It was to prevent them from starting to rob again after they gathered together.
Li Zeyan was by MO Ruyues side. He had long since recovered his identity.
At this moment, he was silently watching all of this.
His expression was indifferent.
He was finally going to leave this mans nest. He was more than happy to do so.
Although his sister did not like these rough men, he would still be angry when he saw these men talking to his sister.
By the way, Ill take the white wolf with me so that you wont eat it. MO Ruyue suddenly thought of something and added.
These men looked quite obedient, but there were always some who were disloyal.
Not all men were so loyal and loyal. There were many despicable people!
However, due to their strength, these people would not expose themselves. MO Ruyue couldnt be bothered to care about such people, as long as they didnt hinder her.
When the white wolf heard MO Ruyues voice, its eyes widened.
He recalled the warning from the demonic beastst night.
Li Zeyan already knew this would happen, and his eyes narrowed coldly.
He hoped that the white wolf had some self-awareness.
Seeing that the Queen had made up her mind, Fan Jian sighed and said,Queen, when are you leaving?
If possible, he still wanted to send the Queen off.
Today.
MO Ruyue thought for a moment. The longer she waited, the more uneasy she felt.
He felt that he would be found soon.
In order to avoid any more trouble, she left early.
Why is it so rushed today?
Theres no rush. Ive already thought about it for a few days.
Fan Jian nced at the white wolf. Your Majesty, youre going to the west.
Can the wolves from the north survive in the west?
Yes, the weather in the west is hot. The wolves in the north might die from the heat in the west.
Another subordinate said worriedly.
It was obvious that the Queen liked the wolves from the north. He actually wanted to bring the wolves from the north.
It doesnt matter. If its hot, Ill shave off its fur.
MO Ruyue said thoughtfully.
Whats the big deal?
It was not a big problem.
Moreover, he was not going to the west, but to the warm south.
The weather in the south was warm, so the wolves in the north would not die from the heat.
l think this method is good.
When he heard that they wanted to shave the white wolfs fur, Li Zeyan agreed with both hands.
He looked at the white wolf lying on the ground with a sinister gaze.
The white wolf felt a chill run down its spine.
But now, he had no choice.
MO Ruyue led Li Zeyan and the white wolf into the carriage. Hillghost sat on MO Ruyues shoulder.
Zeyan, you and the white wolf sit in the carriage. Ill drive the carriage, Okay, sister. I will definitely take good care of the white wolf.
Li Zeyan emphasized the word good and a cold smile appeared on his handsome face.
fairy cave
Everyone fell silent. The queen had left, and their backbone was gone.
Fan Jian distributed the money to everyone and said,Everyone, take your share of the money and disperse. See you in the future.
See you in the martial world.
Although they were reluctant, everyone still respected the Queens words. If they had hands and feet, they could find a job and make a living. A day after MO Ruyue left, Ming Sihan finally found the Fairy Cave.
However, this ce was already empty. There was nothing in the Fairy Cave.
We seem to bete.
Ye Junlin looked at it and let out a deep breath, his brows tightly furrowed.
At this moment, Ming Sihans face was dark and scary, and his dark red eyes were devoid of any warmth.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin looked at each other. Neither of them dared to easily disturb this man.
With a ng, a man stood at the entrance of the cave.
Fan Jian came back to get something because he suddenly remembered that the Queens skateboard was still in the Fairy Cave.
However, he did not expect there to be other people in the Fairy Cave.
The wooden stick in his hand fell to the ground in fear.
Who are you? Why are you in the Fairy Cave?
Fan Jian questioned.
These people looked extraordinary and felt a strong sense of oppression.
Especially the silver-haired man. When he looked at him, it was as if someone was holding his throat.
What a strong aura!
Fan Jian was a little afraid. This man seemed to be even more terrifying than the Queen.
Ye Junlin took a step forward and questioned,Where did the people here go?
Could there be a pair of siblings? Or siblings?
Fan Jian looked at Ye Junlin and then at Ming Sihan. He was so scared that he couldnt speak.
Dont worry, as long as you tell us obediently, we wont kill you.
Ye Junlin consoled.
The man was obviously frightened.
Are you from the Devil Realm? Fan asked.
Yes.
Then all the more I cant tell you the whereabouts of the queen.
After Fan Jian finished speaking, he suddenly felt that he had said something wrong and quickly covered his mouth.
He should have pretended not to know anything.
However, his mouth was still faster than his brain.
The words had already been said.
Ye Junlins eyes lit up. Indeed, Ruyue was here before.
Ming Sihan flew to Fan Jians side and asked in a clear voice, Where is she now?
You are here to capture the Queen, right? Even if I die, I will not tell you the whereabouts of the Queen.
Fan Jian was afraid, but he still didnt want to expose the Queens position, because that would bring death to the Queen.
Ming Sihan grabbed Fan Jians neck and lifted him up, lifting Fan Jians feet off the ground. His eyes were filled with killing intent.
As long as he exerted a little strength, he could break the mans neck.
He said emotionlessly, If you dont say it, then die.
Ye Yunfeng hurriedly stepped forward to stop him. This might be the only person they had a clue to Ruyues whereabouts.
Therefore, he absolutely could not let the Demon Lord kill this man.
Demon Venerable, let me persuade him.
Hearing Ye Yunfengs voice, Ming Sihan let go of his hand.
Fan Jian fell to the ground.
Kill me. 1 will never tell you the whereabouts of the queen.
Fan Jian said angrily.
He had always been a cowardly person, but now he had the courage to say such words.
Because the Queen was good to him, he could not be ungrateful.
Your Queen is called MO Ruyue, right?
Humph!
To be honest, shes also my junior sister. I came to look for her this time because I want her to return to the Demon Realm. We wont hurt her, but if Ruyues whereabouts are known by others, it might be dangerous!
Who knows if what you said is true or not? Why should I believe what you said?
Fan Jian remained vignt against the person in front of him.
Ye Yunfeng advised Fan Jian again.
He had never said so much before.
Ye Junlin, who was beside her, also said, If youre really doing this for the Queens good, you should listen to us. The sects are all looking for her now. Shes in a very dangerous situation!
Fan Jian thought for a moment. Is what you said true?
What we said is naturally true. She is our junior sister, how could we harm her?
The demon had never said that he would punish Junior Sister Ruyue..
Chapter 802 - 802: I Am the White Wolf
Chapter 802 - 802: I Am the White Wolf
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Alright, then Ill tell you. The Queen is in the south. You can just go to the south to look for her. As for the exact ce, the Queen didnt tell us.
Fan Jian sneered in his heart. Who knew if these people were telling the truth?
He could just give them a fake address. Anyway, these people would never be able to find the Queen.
Because he was smart enough to give a fake address.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin looked at each other. They didnt expect this man in front of them to have so many tricks up his sleeve, Demon Venerable, should we head south?
Ye Yunfeng asked.
Ming Sihan nced at Fan Jian and asked, Since you guys have already left, why did youe back?
I, I came back to get the snowboard that the Queen left for me!
Snowboard?
Ming Sihan narrowed his eyes and asked coldly.
Fan Jian stood up and took out his snowboard.Although this is only a wooden board, it was personally made by the Queen.
Give it to me!
Ming Sihan stretched out his hand and said coldly.
Fan Jian shook his head and emphasized,This is what the Queen left for me.
Leave it to you?
Ming Sihan snorted coldly.
Yes.
Fan Jianqiang pretended to be calm. This man was really scary.
He had almost strangled her to death just now.
Fortunately, the person beside him stopped him in time.
Give it to me.
Ming Sihan snatched the snowboard from Fan Jians hands.
How could another man take something that Ruyue had personally made?
It had to be his.
You, how could you snatch my things?
This is mine!
Ming Sihan was very confident and didnt look like someone who would snatch something.
Fan Jian was flustered and exasperated. He clenched his fists and said,That was clearly mine!
Then Ill buy it.
After he finished speaking, Ming Sihan threw down ten thousand taels of silver.
He held the snowboard in his hand and turned around elegantly!
Lets go, he said coldly.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin looked at this scene and were somewhat helpless.
It was hard to believe that the Demon Venerable would do such a thing.
Was there a need to fight over a snowboard?
Fan Jian looked at the 10,000 taels of silver notes on the ground, and the corners of his mouth twitched. Was that guy crazy?
l didnt say I was going to sell it.
He muttered and picked up the banknotes from the ground.
He angrily wanted to throw out the silver notes in his hand.
In the end, he still couldnt bear to part with it. Forget it, its ten thousand silver notes after all.
Looking at the backs of those people leaving, Fan Jian revealed a proud smile,
Fortunately, I was smart and gave them the wrong address. That way, they wouldnt be able to find the Queen.
If the Queen knows, she will definitely be very grateful to me.
Im really a loyal and loyal subordinate.
Fan Jian thought about it and became more and more satisfied with himself.
Your Majesty, enjoy yourself in the West. These bad guys will never find you.
Mo Ruyue couldnt help but sneeze twice while driving the carriage.
After leaving the north, she disguised herself as an old woman to avoid being seen.
She had disguised Li Zeyan as her grandson.
Along the way, they had avoided the patrols of many sects.
Sister, this is already the warm south.
Yeah, its finally not the cold and windy north anymore.
MO Ruyue opened her arms and felt the warmth.
She had bought a house in a small county town. There were not many people in the county town, so there was basically no warrant for her arrest.
No one would have thought that MO Ruyue, the Saintess of the Devil World, would be hiding in a county town.
The journey from the north to the south had been bumpy for several days, and they had finally found a picturesque ce to stay.
Ill go and see if the white wolfs injuries have recovered.
Mo Ruyue said as she walked towards the white wolfs room.
Ill go with my sister too.
Li Zeyan followed closely behind MO Ruyue, cursing the white wolf in his heart.
With a creak, MO Ruyue pushed open the door and entered. The sunlight outside had already squeezed into the room.
There was a faint medicinal fragrance in the room.
MO Ruyue looked at the pile of grass and was stunned on the spot. She couldnt believe it.
There, there was actually a strong white-haired man lying there!
Because she treated the white wolf as a pet, she only made a simple nest for the white wolf on the ground. There was a pile of grass on the ground and two pieces of unwanted clothes were ced on it.
At this moment, the man on the nest made MO Ruyue stop in her tracks.
He felt that it was a little unbelievable.
The white wolf had actually turned into a human!
Sister, whats wrong?
Li Zeyan couldnt help but ask when he didnt see any movement from MO Ruyue.
He saw his sister standing there without moving. He did not know what was going on.
He asked worriedly.
ZeZeyan, the white wolf seemed to have turned into a man!
MO Ruyue stammered.
It was a handsome man wearing a white robe with an ancient red pattern on the corner of his robe.
In the middle of his forehead, there was a mark of red demonic fire, which was very flirtatious.
His long and fair fingers had distinct joints, and his ck nails were as sharp as des.
Li Zeyans expression turned grave when he heard MO Ruyues words.
The white wolf turned into a human?
He clenched his fists and squeezed into the room from outside.
She immediately saw the man with his eyes closed.
Squeak
Hillghost jumped down from MO Ruyues shoulder and approached the man curiously.
The mans curly eyshes trembled slightly, as if he was showing signs of waking up.
Hillghost was so frightened that he ran to MO Ruyues side.
The man slowly opened his eyes, and his vision gradually became clear.
His gaze fell on MO Ruyue, then on Li Zeyan.
Are you a white wolf?
MO Ruyue asked as she stood rooted to the ground.
Hearing MO Ruyues voice, the man looked at her.
Under the meticulous care of this woman and that little brat, his injuries were almost fully healed.
Thats right, Im a white wolf, a demonic beast.
The man admitted frankly. He slowly stood up, his figure tall.
At least 1.9 meters tall.
MO Ruyue felt that this man should be about the same height as the Demon Lord.
She had originally lowered her head to look at this man, but now she needed to raise her head slightly.
When he approached, he felt a wave of pressure.
MO Ruyue subconsciously stepped back.
She forced herself to be calm and said,Are your injuries healed? Thanks to your meticulous care, Ive recovered.
The mans unruly face had a hint of a smile as he spoke slowly.
Suddenly, the smile on his face darkened. His gaze fell on Li Zeyang, who was beside him, and he all thanks to brother Zeyans care. Otherwise, this king would have recovered even faster!
Hmm?
MO Ruyue frowned slightly and looked at Li Zeyan.
Why did it feel like there was a hidden meaning in this mans words?
Its my duty to take care of you. Although Li Zeyan felt a little guilty, he still answered the man confidently.
He was not afraid of the white wolf, but of his sister.
He didnt want his sister to think that he was a bad person.
He just hated the white wolf.
Also, Brother Zeyan is what my sister calls me. Dont call me Brother Zeyan.
The white wolf was not worthy of calling him Brother Zeyan.
This guy was extremely annoying..
Chapter 803 - 803: There Won’t Be an End Between Us
Chapter 803 - 803: There Wont Be an End Between Us
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyues gaze shifted between the two of them, but she did not think too much about it. Perhaps Li Zeyan did not take good care of the white wolf, so the white wolf held a grudge.
She looked at the white wolf curiously and asked, By the way, whats your name?
My name is MO Ruyue.
My name is Di Chenxiao, the wolf king of the northern wolf tribe.
Di Chenxiao spoke slowly, his sharp eyes staring at the woman in front of him.
This woman was human, but she was different from the human women he had seen before.
She was so bold that she wasnt afraid of him.
She even took care of him like a pet.
Of course, he did not like being treated like a pet.
The wolf king of the northern wolf tribe?
How did you get injured? And he was so seriously injured? I remember that the wolf n should live in groups
MO Ruyue asked.
He randomly picked up a wolf, and it turned out to be a wolf king. Moreover, it had transformed into a human.
Not only did he look like a human, but he was also so handsome.
Her entire body carried a wild beauty, wild and unruly, and full of bestiality.
This is an internal matter of the wolf n! Its not convenient to tell.
Di Chenxiao spoke slowly, and his expression became solemn.
Fortunately, he met this woman. Otherwise, he might really have had a narrow escape.
Its not convenient for you to tell me. Who wants to know?
Li Zeyan said sarcastically. It was just the Wolf King. He was probably the most powerful among the wolves.
However,pared to him, she was still far inferior.
Di Chenxiaos pupils shrank. Why was this brat so annoying?
However, he had a natural fear of this little brat.
He didnt even know where that fear came from.
Li Zeyan wouldnt tell Di Chenxiao that this was the bloodline suppression.
Why are you looking at me? Am I wrong?
Li Zeyan muttered softly and continued,Now that your injuries have healed, can you leave this ce?
He just wanted this Wolf King to leave his sister.
He was annoyed when he saw the Wolf King.
Di Chenxiao humphed and said,I cant leave yet.
MO Ruyue asked.
If it was a white wolf, she would definitely keep it by her side.
However, this was a wolf king after all. It wasnt good to keep him by his side.
Moreover, it was a handsome and wild man.
She always felt that it was very dangerous to keep it by her side.
This king has only recovered from his external injuries.
Di Chenxiao clutched his chest.
Thats enough. You can go back to the North and recuperate on your own. My sister has no obligation to take care of you!
Li Zeyan said unhappily.
Damn Di Chenxiao, how dare he say that his internal injuries havent recovered?
Was this a joke?
Isnt there a saying among humans? It was called helping people to the end, sending Buddha to the heavens. Therefore, he would have to trouble Ruyue
next.
Di Chenxiao slightly raised his eyebrows at Li Zeyan.
This little brat always wanted him to leave MO Ruyue, but he just wouldnt.
He wanted to see what this brat could do to him!
This
MO Ruyue looked troubled. She didnt expect Wolf King to cling onto her.
Then, he said,lf you choose to stay by my side, you have to hide with me. Are you willing?
Then, he added, Maybe he didnt know what to do next.
He was afraid that this fellow could not bear the hardship.
As long as I can be with Ruyue, Im willing to do anything.
Di Chenxiao immediately expressed his opinion.
This womans craftsmanship was not bad.
The food was very delicious. He had never eaten anything so delicious before.
Alright, then follow me.
MO Ruyue agreed.
He had his own calctions in his heart. Letting this guy stay by his side might be able to y a role in deceiving others.
He didnt let her stay by his side because he was handsome.
Actually, ording to the tradition of our wolf n, Ruyue, you are my savior, so I should devote myself to you. So, Ruyue, can you be my princess? Di Chenxiao revealed a sincere expression.
Although this woman was human, she was different from ordinary women.
He had courage, courage, and wisdom.
Such a woman was very attractive. Dream on, you think youre worthy of my sister?
Li Zeyan immediately retorted.
This guy actually boasted so shamelessly. He was simply too shameless.
He still wanted his sister to be the princess consort?
Who cared?
If Im not worthy, do you think you are?
Di Chenxiao looked at Li Zeyan from head to toe and added, You little brat!
Brat, how dare you call me brat? Im your ancestor!
Li Zeyan said angrily. He was about to explode from anger.
MO Ruyue looked at the two of them and hurriedly said, Can you guys stop arguing?
Di Chenxiao was really too much. He was a wolf king after all, but he actually lowered himself to the level of a child who had not grown up yet.
Sister, look at him!
Li Zeyan pointed at Di Chenxiao with an using expression.
If it wasnt for his sister, Li Zeyan would have revealed his true self and let this Wolf King know what it meant to be an ancestor.
Damn Di Chenxiao.
Li Zeyan was furious.
He was about to explode from anger.
Di Chenxiao crossed his arms and looked fearless.
Di Chenxiao, you cant bully a child!
Mo Ruyue looked at Di Chenxiao seriously.
This guys words were indeed a little overboard.
Look at how he bullied Zeyans brother!
He didnt look like an adult at all.
Sister, Im not a child!
Li Zeyan poked each other with his fingers.
So in her sisters eyes, he was actually a child who had not grown up.
So sad.
He was not a child.
Di Chenxiao heard Li Zeyans voice and a wicked smile shed across his eyes.
Alright, I wont bully children. Im an adult, after all. I wont argue with the child!
It would have been fine if he hadnt mentioned this, but Li Zeyan became even angrier.
Di Chenxiao, you did it on purpose!
l didnt do it on purpose.
He did it on purpose!
The corner of Di Chenxiaos mouth curled up into a faint arc.
Seeing this little wimp roar, he felt much happier.
The two of you are really not suitable to be in the same space.
MO Ruyue secretly shook her head and quickly left Di Chenxiaos room with Li Zeyan.
Ruyue, do you want to consider what 1 said just now? Be this kings princess?
Di Chenxiao returned to the topic.
He had to repay the favor. If he didnt, he would be called an ingrate.
The only thing he could do was to make this woman his princess consort.
Forget it. Youre a wolf, and Im a human. Were different species. If we understand reproductive istion, there wont be any results between us. MO Ruyue refused without hesitation.
This guy was a wolf, and she was a human. It was hard to ept an interracial rtionship.
What reproductive istion? Am I not human now? I have everything that a human should have, and Im even stronger than a human! Moreover, their endurance was better than humans.
He didnt even consider this?
MO Ruyues facial features were twisted. Why was there a hint of color in his words?
No, I cant ept it.
So, save it.
After saying that, MO Ruyue was about to leave.
Seeing that MO Ruyue was about to leave, Di Chenxiao asked, Where do I sleep tonight?
You can sleep in this room.
But theres no nket on the bed, and it hasnt been cleaned. Di Chenxiao nced at the bed. It was empty.
When he was a wolf king, he could be casual and sleep in a cave.
But now that he had returned to his human form, he naturally had to live and sleep like a human..
Chapter 804 - 804: Righteous Sect
Chapter 804 - 804: Righteous Sect
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
You have your own hands and feet. Think of a way. You cant let your savior serve you like a ve, right? If you have money, you can hire me to serve you, but my appearance fee is very high. You cant afford it!
After all, the Wolf King was a wild beast. He definitely did not have much money on him.
She didnt want to serve Di Chenxiao.
Even if she was handsome, the Demon Lord was even more handsome. If she was asked to do something, wouldnt she have to pay obediently?
She was such a materialistic woman. If she wasnt materialistic, what would she eat, what would she live in, what would she wear?
Mental food could not fill ones stomach.
It would cost money to buy this house.
You dont have to serve this king, this king can serve you. Youre right, youre this kings savior.
l dont need you to serve me.
After saying that, MO Ruyue led Li Zeyan to the kitchen.
He was ready to cook.
Although he wasnt hungry, he didnt know what to do.
Then he would cook to pass the time.
Di Chenxiao watched Mo Ruyue leave. This woman was indeed different.
There were quite a few female wolves in the wolf n, and all of them were fawning over him, but his thoughts were not on those female wolves. Even though MO Ruyue had just rejected him, he still did not give up.
After making the bed, Di Chenxiao went to the kitchen.
Ruyue, is there anything I can help you with?
Di Chenxiao took the initiative to ask.
Chances were always given to those who took the initiative. He had to take the initiative.
Ill help you here. I dont need you!
Li Zeyan stared at Di Chenxiao as if he was facing a great enemy.
In the future, Di Chenxiao would be his enemy.
Di Chenxiao ignored Li Zeyan and squeezed his way to MO Ruyues side.
He pressed his hand on MO Ruyues kitchen knife and said, Ruyue, leave this kind of work to this king.
You
MO Ruyue wanted to say something but hesitated. She looked at the tall man and could only take a step back.
She looked especially petite beside Di Chenxiao.
It could only be said that this man was too huge.
His nose bridge was also very straight, and his pair of fierce wolf eyes were imposing without anger.
The lines on his face were distinct, and his long white hair fluttered in the wind, making him look wild and rough.
The Demon Lord also had long silver-white hair, but he was not as wild and rough.
She liked the demon more. Every part of him was perfect.
This king is done cutting, how is it?
Di Chenxiao tilted his head and asked.
MO Ruyue came back to her senses and nced at the dishes on the chopping board.Your cutting skills are not bad. Have you cut vegetables before?
No, this is the first time.
He was not an idiot. How could he not even know how to cut vegetables?
Listening to Di Chenxiaos words, MO Ruyue couldnt help but think of the Demon Commander.
Her original kitchen had been blown up by the Demon Lord.
l think youre better at this.
Mo Ruyue said thoughtfully.
This fellow knew it just by looking at it. It meant that his learning ability was also very strong.
It was quite powerful.
This king feels that this king is more powerful in all aspects.
Di Chenxiao continued.
Li Zeyan, who was burning the fire, couldnt help but sneer when he heard Di Chenxiaos shameless words.lf you were powerful in all aspects, how could you be injured?
This fellow was simply boasting shamelessly. He actually said that he was amazing in all aspects.
This guy probably didnt even know how to write the word face.
Brat, if you dont speak, no one will treat you as a mute.
Di Chenxiao listened to Li Zeyans words, and a cold light shed in his wolf eyes.
Why was this childs mouth so chatty?
It should be sewn up so that he wouldnt talk nonsense.
l was right. Are you angry from embarrassment?
Li Zeyan was still unwilling to give up.
This guy ignored his warning and actually approached his sister. He should be prepared for the consequences of his special treatment.
Di Chenxiao pointed his kitchen knife at Li Zeyan and said coldly,Try saying that again?
Ill try it then
MO Ruyue interrupted him.
Youre a Wolf Kine after all. Whv are vou lowering vourself to the level of a child? MO Ruyue hurriedly chided.
Then, she took the kitchen knife from Di Chenxiaos hand.
How could he point a kitchen knife at someone?
The kitchen knife was used to cut vegetables.
Li Zeyan made a face at Di Chenxiao.
See, his sister was still helping him.
Who was this Di Chenxiao?
l was just joking with him. Ruyue, dont be angry. Let me cut the vegetables. After saying that, Di Chenxiao took back the kitchen knife from MO Ruyues hand.
Looking at MO Ruyues petite hand, he couldnt help but hold it and said, Ruyue, why are your hands so small?
Hisrge palm easily wrapped around MO Ruyues small hand.
If she hadnt seen the curiosity in Di Chenxiaos eyes, MO Ruyue would have thought that this man was harassing her.
She retracted her hand and said, Youre a man, and Im a woman. Generally speaking, womens bones are naturally smaller than mens. If I had a bigger bone structure than yours, you would be like a little bird in front of me now.
Pervert, let go of my sisters hand and touch me. Do you believe that my sister and I will throw you out?
Li Zeyan stood up from the bench when he saw Di Chenxiao holding his sisters hand.
His eyes were fierce as he scolded Di Chenxiao.
Did this man know what he was doing?
This king is just curious. The hands of those female wolves are quite big. He had never seen such a small one before, so he felt that it was very novel.
It was small and soft, making ones heart itch.
Alright, alright, stop arguing. Hurry up and cook. If you dont want to eat, hurry up and leave.
MO Ruyue hurriedly stopped the two from continuing their quarrel. It was as if the two of them were born enemies.
There were endless disputes.
Her hearing was not good anymore.
fairy cave
Fan Jian put away the silver notes and prepared to go back.
When he reached the entrance of the cave, he stopped and looked back deeply. His heart was filled with emotion.
He would always remember the good times he spent in the Fairy Cave.
Just as he was about to leave, he suddenly saw a few people flying over from afar.
He immediately wanted to escape, but it was already toote.
Ling Shoumos face was slightly pale. He stared at the man in front of him and sized him up.
Was there a woman called MO Ruyue here?
His voice was low. Because he had been injured and his injuries had not fully recovered, he seemed to becking in energy.
Who are you?
Fan Jians eyes were filled with vignce.
There were actually people who came to look for their queen again. They did not know if they were good or bad people,
Zhao Xin replied, Were from Xuanling Immortal Sect. This is our master. He heard that my junior sister is here, so please tell him where she is. Shes in a very dangerous situation now. She can only be protected if she returns to
Xuanling Immortal Sect.
His face was full of sincerity.
Fan Jian nced at them and you really from Xuanling Immortal
Sect?
He knew that Xuanling Immortal Sect was a righteous sect.
Of course. This is the token of our immortal sect. If you dont believe me, you can take a look!
As Xin Zhao spoke, he took out the token beside him.
Fan Jian took a look. It was really the token of Xuanling Immortal Sect.
It seemed that these people were really righteous.
He remembered that the Queens identity was once a spy sent to the Demon Realm. Now that her identity was exposed, she was indeed hunted down by the people of the Demon Realm.
Fortunately, he had saved the Queens life..
Chapter 805 - 805: Deep in the Desert
Chapter 805 - 805: Deep in the Desert
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
l thought you were here to cause trouble for the Queen, Fan Jian said with a sigh of relief. Not long before you, I met the people of the Demon Realm. I lied to them that the Queen had gone to the south. Fortunately, I was smart and didnt tell them the true direction.
Ling Shoumos eyes lit up and he stared at Fan Jian. So, you know where Ruyue is?
MO Ruyue was from Xuanling Immortal Sect and would always be from Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Thats right. Im the Queens most valued subordinate. The Queen only told me where she went.
Fan Jian said proudly.
He said that on purpose to let them know how much the Queen valued him.
In the past, no one had ever thought so highly of him.
Only the Queen valued him and trusted him.
Then can you tell us where Junior Sister Ruyue is?
Xin Zhao asked.
They did not expect that the people from the Demon Realm had alreadye before them.
Fortunately, this guy had told the people of the Demon Realm the wrong direction.
Fan Jian nodded. Our queen has gone to the west. If you look in the direction of the west, you will definitely find her.
Thank you very much.
Zhao Xin revealed a grateful expression.
He and his master looked at each other. It seemed like they would be able to find Ruyue soon.
Youre wee. If it werent for the fact that youre from the Xuanling Immortal Sect, I wouldnt have told you.
Fan Jian waved his hand.
It was all a piece of cake.
l hope you can protect the Queen well. Dont let anyone else harm her.
He advised earnestly.
Dont worry, well protect her.
Zhao Xin replied.
The current MO Ruyue was no longer the MO Ruyue of the past. Everyones attitude and opinion of her had changed a lot.
Now, that womans entire body was emitting a dazzling light.
She was so dazzling at the Immortal Alliance Conference that countless people saw her.
This time, he would find her and not let her leave Xuanling Immortal Sect. She would always be a part of Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Thus, Ling Shoumo led his men and rushed toward the west.
However, they did not find any clues about MO Ruyue even though they had been searching westward.
Looking at the endless desert in front of him, Xin Zhao was stunned.
He nced at Ling Shoumo hesitantly.
Then, he slowly asked,Master, are we still going to search forward? That was a desert, a desert that stretched as far as the eye could see!
l have to find him.
Ling Shoumo looked at the desert in front of him. The blue sky and the golden desert formed a huge painting.
Other than the desert and the blue sky, there seemed to be nothing else.
His eyes were firm. He didnt believe that he couldnt find MO Ruyue.
No matter where MO Ruyue was, he had to find her.
But I feel that Junior Sister Ruyue should not be in the desert. After all, the environment here is harsh. I think
Presumably, Junior Sister Ruyue would not be here.
Zhao Xin did not dare to finish his sentence.
Because he saw the displeasure on his masters face.
You stay here. Ill go look for him.
Ling Shoumo said coldly.
Masterl
If I go alone, you guys will only be dragging me down!
They werent very familiar with flying on swords, so it would take more time to fly and stop.
It was not as convenient as him moving alone.
Ling Shoumo had already made up his mind to leave. Without waiting for Zhao Xin to say anything, he flew directly into the depths of the desert on his sword.
Senior Brother, do we still want to follow?
The junior brothers were at a loss and could not make up their minds.
Actually, they didnt want to enter the desert.
The desert was too hot, and it was easy to get thirsty.
Entering the Sea of Desert just like that really required a certain amount of courage.
Zhao Xin looked at his masters departing figure and let out a long sigh.Well listen to Master. Theres no need to follow. But why do I feel that Master said those words in anger just now?
The junior apprentice brother said worriedly.
Dont think too much about it.
If you want to follow, hurry up and catch up to Master while you can.
What were these two pretending for?
The two junior brothers instantly fell silent.
Xin Zhao nced at the two of them and shook his head in his heart. They only knew how to put on an act. If they really went up, they would be afraid again.
At this moment, MO Ruyue and Li Zeyan were strolling in the small town outside. Di Chenxiao was following behind MO Ruyue.
Although the weather in the south was good, there were more Evils.
There was not a single person in the entire town, and there was a sinister aura everywhere.
It was a stark contrast to the liveliness of yesterday.
Why is there no one in the market today?
MO Ruyue frowned slightly and looked around. She subconsciously held Li
Zeyans hand tightly.
There shouldnt be any ghosts in broad daylight, right?
She thought to herself. She had wanted to go out today to buy some food, but in the end, the shops in the town were all closed, and there was no one on the streets. Moreover, there was a strange aura everywhere.
Sister, dont be afraid. I will protect you.
Li Zeyan said seriously.
Ahem, Im not afraid. Im so powerful. Why would I be afraid?
MO Ruyue coughed lightly, unwilling to admit that she was afraid.
As soon as he finished speaking, a white smoke drifted over from the deep mountains. The white smoke instantly enveloped the entire town.
The white smoke was like a monster that swallowed the entire town.
Moreover, the smoke was getting thicker and thicker. At first, they could still vaguely see something ten meters away, but now, they could not see anything.
She could only see Li Zeyan beside her.
MO Ruyue hugged Li Zeyans arm and whispered,l feel that this fog is a little strange. Why dont we go back?
Im scared, Im scared. I should leave quickly.
She wasnt afraid of monsters and zombies, but she was afraid of the unknown.
Sister, dont be afraid. Im here.
Li Zeyan felt his sister hugging his arm, and his heart was instantly filled with joy.
Naturally, he did not want to go back.
If he went back, his sister would not hug his arm.
The thick fog covered the sky and the sun could not shine in.
Suddenly, a bright red figure appeared in the white fog. She stood straight in front of him. She was as tall as a woman.
Because of the white fog, the woman could only see it hazily.
MO Ruyue stopped in her tracks and felt a chill run down her spine.
Damn it, could this be something unclean?
At this moment, that thing was only five meters away from him. Her legs seemed to be filled with lead and she could not move.
ZeZeyan
MO Ruyue stuttered. She was most afraid of this kind of mysterious person.
Countless scenes from horror movies shed through his mind.
He didnt expect that he would be so scared when he encountered this in broad daylight.
At least there were two men beside her. One of them was the Wolf King.
Sister, Im here.
Hearing Li Zeyans voice, MO Ruyue felt much more at ease.
Di Chenxiao took two steps forward and stood in front of MO Ruyue.
His tall figure blocked MO Ruyue behind him.
This instantly gave MO Ruyue a sense of security.
He was really too manly..
Chapter 806 - 806: Fear of the Unknown
Chapter 806 - 806: Fear of the Unknown
Who are you? Do you believe that this king will tear you apart?
Di Chenxiao shouted angrily.
The white smoke grew thicker and thicker, and he could even hear a woman crying.
There was a smile in the bitterness, and it was hard to tell whether he was crying orughing.
Di Chenxiaos eyes turned cold as he walked towards the red figure.
Li Zeyan and MO Ruyue also followed.
The red figure seemed to be retreating. They could not keep up with the red figures pace at all.
After chasing for a long time, MO Ruyue wasnt as scared anymore.
Now that they had turned the tables, they should be afraid of that red figure.
Di Chenxiao, stop chasing.
MO Ruyue shouted. She couldnt chase after them anymore, and she was also afraid that the other party would set up a trap for them.
Di Chenxiao heard MO Ruyues voice and stopped in his tracks. He turned around and said,You can call me Shen.
It would be too distant to call him by his name.
She didnt like being called by her name.
Ah Chen.
Shen, Shen, Shen. It felt a little mushy.
Mo Ruyue said.
That works too.
It was better than calling him by his full name.
Theres no need to chase after her. Ill apologize to her.
MO Ruyue said to Di Chenxiao.
Apologize? Why are you apologizing? Di Chenxiao didnt understand. They didnt offend each other.
What was there to apologize for?
Li Zeyan knew something and said to Di Chenxiao, Elder Sister has her own reasons for doing things.
Zeyan really understands me.
MO Ruyue said with a smile.
When Di Chenxiao saw this, he didnt say anything.
MO Ruyue took a step forward and said to the red figure, I didnt mean to offend you. Rest in peace. Im sorry!
As soon as he finished speaking, there was a loud p of thunder. Lightning struck the red figure.
In an instant, the red figure disappeared and the thick fog dispersed.
The sunlight shone on everyone again.
If he was ying tricks on her, then dont me her for being ruthless.
What MO Ruyue hated the most was people who pretended to be mysterious and scared her into a daze.
Today, he had to teach that person a lesson.
In the face of such a matter, the more timid one was, the more arrogant the other party would be. Therefore, one had to be more courageous.
Even if Sadako crawled out of the television, she would have to put her back in.
Aftering out of the well, he stuffed her back into the well.
At the same time, he recited the core values of the country.
Prosperity, democratism, civilization, harmony
Freedom, equality, justice, the rule ofw
Patriotic, dedicated, honest, friendly
He directly dispelled these unclean things.
Di Chenxiao looked up at the sky and said,Why would there be thunder in such a bright sun?
At this moment, he still didnt know that lightning was rted to MO Ruyue.
He just thought that what happened just now was a coincidence.
Who knows?
MO Ruyue shrugged, indicating that she did not know either.
She looked around. The terrifying fog and the red figure had disappeared.
It was as if nothing had happened.
Sister, it looks like we wont be able to buy anything today. Why dont we go back?
Li Zeyan said.
Her sister had already let go of her arm.
He felt a sense of loss.
We can only go back But what was that thing just now?
MO Ruyue asked with a puzzled expression.
Was it a ghost or some other evil?
After all, he couldnt confirm his identity without seeing his face.
I dont know. Ive never seen him before.
Li Zeyan shook his head. Usually, the powerful ones would not appear here.
It was probably that kind of small character, a small character that was not worthy of him remembering her name. Ive never seen it before either.
Di Chenxiao expressed that he didnt know.
That thing looked strange. It had been hiding in the fog all this time and did not dare to reveal its true appearance.
Something that dared not show itself was nothing!
Seeing that neither of them knew, MO Ruyue could only say,Then lets go back.
They hade out to buy food, but none of the shops outside were open. There was not even a single person on the street.
The three of them could only return dejectedly.
At night, there was still no one in the town. The entire town was dead silent.
The pale moonlight shone on the stone pavement on the street. Mist slowly surged from the deep mountains and forests.
The moon hid in the clouds in fear.
Everything was silent.
How is it? Is my noodles delicious?
MO Ruyue drank thest mouthful of soup and looked at Di Chenxiao and Li Zeyan.
He waited for the two of them to praise him.
Of course, Sisters noodles are delicious. 1 love them the most. Li Zeyan was very supportive.
Even if her sisters cooking was not delicious, it was still the best.
However, his sisters cooking was delicious.
Di Chenxiao ate the noodles and said regretfully,lt would be even better if there was meat.
After all, he was a wolf, and it was his nature to love meat.
Of course, he wouldnt die without meat.
l was going to buy some meat today, but I encountered that incident.
MO Ruyue said helplessly.
She also wanted to eat meat, but there was no meat seller.
He could only wait and see tomorrow.
Squeak
At this moment, Hillghost made a sound and looked at the gate of the courtyard.
The door was tightly shut, but Hillghost noticed that there seemed to be movement outside.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but nce at the courtyard. She wouldnt have known if she hadnt looked, but she was shocked when she saw it.
At some point, the thick fog from the day had appeared again.
The atmosphere at night was even scarier than during the day.
MO Ruyue gulped. Did that thinge to her during the day?
Ah Chen, Zeyan, I feel like that thing from the day is here again. She lowered her voice and stared outside the courtyard.
As soon as he finished speaking, he heard a knock on the door.
Normal people would knock on the door faster, but the knocking sound from outside was very slow, as if there was no strength to knock.
Ill go outside and take a look. Li Zeyan stood up.
What was ying tricks?
As he spoke, he walked out.
He opened the gate of the courtyard, and there seemed to be a figure shing past.
Sister, Ill chase after him and take a look.
Zeyan, or Forget it.
Before he could finish his sentence, Li Zeyan closed the door and walked out.
MO Ruyue and Di Chenxiao looked at each other. They were the only ones left.
Of course, there was also a mountain ghost.
Hillghost didnt know what was going on. He was holding a walnut in his hands and was pulling at it.
The courtyard was filled with thick fog, and everything became hazy.
It was not as scary during the day as at night.
Will Zeyan be alright? Dont worry, hell be fine.
Di Chenxiaoforted.
Li Zeyan was also a demonic beast. As for what it was, he was not sure.
However, the woman in front of him did not seem to know that Li Zeyan was a demonic beast.
Knock, knock, knock
There was another knock on the door.
The pace was still so slow.
Ill go take a look.
Di Chenxiao also stood up with a solemn expression. He wanted to see who the person outside the door was.
MO Ruyue grabbed Di Chenxiaos hand and said,Dont leave me alone.
She had never been so scared before, mainly because the atmosphere was too scary.
If that thing had directly appeared in front of him, he would not have been so afraid.
It was because he couldnt see that he felt a fear of the unknown.
When Di Chenxiao saw MO Ruyue holding his hand, he was moved and said,Dont worry, I wont leave you alone.
Lets go and take a look together.
MO Ruyue seemed to be particrly afraid of this.
In fact, he felt that there was nothing to be afraid of. The level was very low, and it was only suitable to scare ordinary people.
Yes.
MO Ruyue held Di Chenxiaos hand tightly and they walked to the door together.
Hillghost followed behind him in confusion.
Among them, only MO Ruyue was afraid..
Chapter 807 - 807: An Inauspicious Day
Chapter 807 - 807: An Inauspicious Day
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When the two of them approached the door, the knocking stopped.
Just as Di Chenxiao was about to open the door, the door was pushed open.
Ah
Ah
MO Ruyue screamed, thinking that the female ghost had pushed the door open.
When a person was tense, they would scream uncontrobly when they were stimted.
In fact, the person who pushed the door open was not a female ghost, but Li Zeyan.
When Li Zeyan heard MO Ruyues scream, he was so frightened that he almost hit her.
He only stopped when he saw that it was MO Ruyue.
Big sister.
Li Zeyan called out in a low voice. It turned out that the person who screamed was his sister.
He wondered who it was.
He was shocked.
MO Ruyue paused. She saw who it was and slowly said,So its Zeyan. Did you find anything?
She let go of Di Chenxiaos arm awkvvardly.
Not only did she scream, but she also hugged Di Chenxiaos arm.
l seemed to have discovered a figure earlier. I chased after it, but I didnt manage to catch up.
Sister, how are things here? Li Zeyan asked.
MO Ruyue looked troubled. Not long after you went out, Ah Chen and I heard a knock on the door, so we wanted to open the door to take a look. Just as we were about to open the door, you pushed it open and came in. Looks like it should be the thing we encountered during the day.
Li Zeyan said thoughtfully.
Are we entangled by that thing?
MO Ruyue regretted that she had only apologized once during the day. She should have apologized a few more times and killed him.
It was always so annoying to pretend to be mysterious.
Ruyue, dont be afraid. That thing is just a small character who doesnt even dare to show his face. Theres nothing to be afraid of.
Di Chenxiao consoled.
He had never put such things in his eyes. They were not on the same level at all.
MO Ruyue thought for a moment and said hesitantly, Well, why dont you guys sleep in my room tonight? Im a little scared to be alone.
She was afraid that there would be something on the nket when she opened her eyes, and she was afraid that there would be someone beside her when she opened her eyes!
She could only sleep peacefully with others by her side.
Sister, Zeyan can apany you. Forget about him, right?
Li Zeyan looked at Di Chenxiao with disdain.
Who knew how well this guy was controlling his bestial nature? If his bestial nature red up, wouldnt his sister suffer?
Di Chenxiao smiled coldly and replied to Li Zeyan,Can you protect Ruyue alone? 1 was the one who apanied Ruyue after you chased after her! Seeing the two of them arguing, MO Ruyue seemed to have a better idea.
Why dont the three of us y Fight the Landlord all night?
Anyway, he wouldnt die if he didnt sleep for a night.
He had to figure out what was going on after dawn.
The residents of the town were fine. It had been almost a day since theyst saw the residents of the town.
What is Fight the Landlord?
Li Zeyan and Di Chenxiao both looked puzzled.
MO Ruyue took out a deck of poker cards from her storage ring with a smile. She had made them herself when she was bored.
The poker cards were a little crude, but they could be yed.
You two sit over here, Ill tell you the rules.
MO Ruyue said as she walked into the room.
Li Zeyan and Di Chenxiao looked at each other. They didnt like each other and snorted at the same time.
That night, the three of them did not sleep.
Even if there was a knock on the door, he did not care. Continue, continue. Ignore the knocking outside. Let it knock.
Mo Ruyue looked up at the door and ignored him.
He knocked on the door casually, and if she got up to answer it, it would be his loss.
It was not until the rooster crowed outside that the sound of knocking on the door gradually disappeared.
The sky was starting to brighten, and the thick air in the courtyard had also dissipated.
After staying up all night, MO Ruyue was still feeling refreshed.
Li Zeyan, do you know how to do it or not? Were farmers, and Ruyue is thendlord. Why are you betting on me?
Di Chenxiao looked at Li Zeyan.
Now that they were only in the same team, this guy was still betting on him!
Im sorry, I forgot, Li Zeyan said softly as he held the card.
Actually, he did it on purpose. Who wanted to form a team with him?
Alright, you forgot, right?
Emperor Chen Xiaos wolf eyes turned cold. Next was the battle between the two of them.
MO Ruyue was thendlord, and she was the fisherman who reaped the benefits.
Its dawn. Ill go wash up first and go outter to see whats going on.
He put down the poker cards in his hand and stretched. The long night had finally passed.
Li Zeyan and Di Chenxiao were secretlypeting.
Di Chenxiao, youre really shameless.
Im shameless? Do you believe that Ill tell Ruyue that youre a demonic beast?
How dare you!
Why wouldnt I dare?
Di Chenxiao revealed a proud expression.
Li Zeyan bit his lip. He did not want Sister Ruyue to know that he was also a demonic beast.
If you dont want me to expose you, youd better not provoke me.
Are you threatening me?
Thats right. Who asked me to have something on you?
Hillghost raised his head and watched the conversation between the two.
It was very happy. Finally, someone could control Li Zeyan.
Usually, Li Zeyan was the one who bullied it.
At this moment, MO Ruyue came over after washing up.
What are you two doing?
She felt that the atmosphere between Li Zeyan and Di Chenxiao was a little off. She didnt know what they were doing.
Were these two born enemies?
Once she was not around, the two of them would quarrel.
It was really amazing. Sister, we didnt do anything.
Ruyue, shall we go out?
When the two of them saw MO Ruyueing over, they instantly pretended that nothing had happened. They didnt even look at each other.
Then lets go.
MO Ruyue nced at Hillghost, who immediately understood and jumped onto MO Ruyues shoulder.
asionally, she would jump into MO Ruyues arms.
Li Zeyan and Di Chenxiao followed behind MO Ruyue.
When he went out today, there were peopleing and going outside. Although there were not many people in tovvn, it was still quite lively.
The children yed in groups of three to five.
It was theplete opposite of the empty street yesterday.
This is a normal street.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but sigh.
The three of them went to a shop. The boss and thedy boss were sorting out the goods.
Seeing that there was a customer, the boss warmly weed him and said,ls there anything you need? Boss, give me some oil. MO Ruyue said.
Did you bring the oil can?
No, 1 havent.
If you dont have a tank of oil, youll have to pay ten copper coins.
Okay, then add ten copper coins.
Ten wens was nothing to her.
Mo Ruyue couldnt help but ask while the boss was filling the tank,Boss, there was no one on the street yesterday. Everyone closed their doors.
Upon hearing MO Ruyues voice, the boss paused in his actions and almost spilled the oil.
His expression wasnt too good, and he said softly,Yesterday was an unlucky day. Be careful not to get entangled when you go out.
We went out yesterday and saw the thick fog. There was also a woman. Even at night
Even though he couldnt see her face clearly, she was dressed in red, and the person crying was a woman.
From this, he could tell that it was a woman.
MO Ruyue said as she observed the bosss expression..
Chapter 808 - 808: Stay in the South
Chapter 808 - 808: Stay in the South
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The boss expression became uglier and uglier.
He handed the oil can to MO Ruyue and said, A total of one tael of silver. You are foreigners living in the house on the west side, right?
Yes, I am.
Let me give you a piece of advice. That house isnt clean. Its best to move out so that something like this wont happen again next month.
Boss, can you tell me why?
MO Ruyue was a little curious. How could she encounter such a thing?
The boss hesitated.
Boss, here you go. Keep the change. I want to hear a story.
MO Ruyue took out ten taels of silver and gave it to the boss.
The boss didnt want to say it at first. After all, those things were too unlucky.
However, when he saw Chu Ruyue take out ten taels of silver, he couldnt help but feel tempted.
In this small town, earning a few taels of silver a day was already considered not bad.
And this woman in front of him actually gave him ten taels of silver. Excluding the oil money, he could still earn a lot.
Why are you foreigners so curious about this kind of thing? The boss said as he took the ten taels of silver from MO Ruyue.
This foreigner was really rich.
After all, we met yesterday, so Im very curious.
MO Ruyue recalled yesterdays incident and still felt a lingering fear.
What exactly was hidden in this? Was it the loss of morality or the annihtion of humanity?
This deeply aroused MO Ruyues curiosity.
This matter probably started more than ten years ago. That house lives in a rich family in our town. The rich family has a son, but his son was born stupid
As the boss spoke, he moved three stools over and gestured for them to sit down and listen to him in detail.
This matter was notplicated, but it was a little cruel.
That fools wife was bought, but the girl refused toply. That family abused the girl every day. It was simply inhuman torture. It was tragic. Later on, the girl pretended to agree to the marriage. In the end, she killed the fool on the wedding night and hung herself. That family buried the fool properly. As for the brides body, it was thrown into the valley behind the mountain.
Later on, something strange happened in this small town. That family died As for the house being upied by that familys rtives
After a long time, the boss finally told MO Ruyue the whole story. There was a hint of regret in his voice.
Thats why youd better leave that house quickly. Its clearly a haunted house. the boss advised.
MO Ruyues expression was solemn. So this was what happened.
He felt a littleplicated.
Although he didnt spend much money to buy that house, it was a bit of a loss to leave after staying for two days.
He originally thought that thing wasing for him.
In the end, it was just a misunderstanding.
Then didnt anyone go to the back of the mountain to collect the girls corpse?
MO Ruyue couldnt help but ask.
Who would dare to go? The back of the mountain was gloomy all year round, and the passing of such a hot day would make ones hair stand on end. Previously, there were brave young people who went there, but they fell ill the moment they returned. They even talked nonsense until they moved out of the town.
No one dares to go there now.
The bosss expression was a little cautious. He felt a chill down his spine when he mentioned this matter.
He felt as if there was a pair of eyes staring at him from behind.
Then, the boss stood up and said, Ive told you everything. Youd better leave that haunted house. Otherwise, something bad will happen.
Seeing the boss like this, MO Ruyue smiled and said,Alright, well leave that house as soon as possible.
After saying that, MO Ruyue carried the oil can and left the shop with the two people behind her.
It seemed that he could not continue to live in this town for a long time.
Although that thing didnt seem that scary, she was very concerned about the haunted house.
Haunted houses were more unlucky. She did not want her good luck to be drowned by bad luck.
Li Zeyan noticed that MO Ruyue did not say anything. He could not help but ask, Sister, are we leaving that haunted house?
He was not afraid of the so-called haunted house at all.
Those monsters and whatnot were much lower in level than their demonic beasts.
There was no need to be afraid at all.
To put it bluntly, other than being able to bewitch the minds of ordinary people, it seemed that it could not do anything else.
Ordinary people who lost their minds were easily in danger.
Of course Im leaving. I dont want to stay in a house with a dead person for so long.!
MO Ruyue replied without hesitation.
He didnt expect such a thing to happen in such a beautiful ce.
If there was no such thing, this ce would be very suitable for living.
Then, do you want to go to the back of the mountain to take a look?
Li Zeyan asked again.
Di Chenxiao nced at Li Zeyan with an inexplicable look on his face. Youre such a good brother. You want to bring Ruyue to such an unlucky ce?
He had never seen someone who would cheat his sister like this. Li Zeyan immediately retorted, I was just asking casually.
How can you ask that?
If I want to ask, Ill ask.
MO Ruyue revealed a helpless expression as she listened to their bickering.
He really didnt want others to know that the three of them were in cahoots.
I wont go to the back mountain. As for these things, I dont intend to interfere.
MO Ruyue shook her head to avoid getting into trouble.
Moreover, this matter had nothing to do with her. Since she already knew the cause and the result, that was enough.
Perhaps she was the kind of person who did not have a heart.
For no reason, she did not want to collect other peoples corpses.
There were so many people in this small town, but they didnt go to collect her body, and she was just a foreigner.
It was better not to care.
She was still on the run all over the world. Who would help her?
MO Ruyue let out a long sigh.
He felt helpless.
Di Chenxiao and Li Zeyan shut their mouths.
They looked at each other and then turned their heads away.
After returning to the residence, MO Ruyue packed her things and prepared to leave.
Originally, it was just her and Li Zeyan, but now with Di Chenxiao, the journey was no longer so boring. Just listening to Li Zeyan and Di Chenxiao bicker was interesting.
These two guys must have been enemies in their previous lives.
Or else, they would just fight each other whenever they met in this lifetime?
Ruyue, why dont we go back to the north?
Seeing that MO Ruyue didnt seem to have anywhere to go, Di Chenxiao invited her.
After all, Ruyue was his savior. He would definitely treat her well.
When he returned, it would also be the time for him to take revenge.
Those guys with wild ambitions wanted to snatch the position of the Wolf King from his hands, so they did not hesitate to work together to scheme against him.
He hadnt returned for so long. Perhaps they thought he was dead.
When he returned, he would definitely tear those guys apart.
Di Chenxiaos wolf eyes were filled with ruthlessness.
I dont want to go back to the north. Although the snow is fun, its really cold there. I still like the warmth of the south.
MO Ruyue shook her head and rejected Di Chenxiaos invitation.
She should just stay in the south.
Alright, if you want to go, just say it.
Di Chenxiao didnt try to persuade him.
The South was indeed pretty good.
It was no wonder that she was reluctant to leave this ce. If it were him, he would also be reluctant to leave.
Are you leaving?
Li Zeyan asked Di Chenxiao if he wanted to leave his sister.
He couldnt wait for Di Chenxiao to leave his sister..
Chapter 809 - 809: A Trustable Master
Chapter 809 - 809: A Trustable Master
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Di Chenxiao turned around and saw that Li Zeyans cheeks were slightly red. He directly pinched Li Zeyans cheeks, and a hint of evil shed in his eyes. He gritted his teeth and said, l cant bear to part with you. Why would 1 leave?
Ah, you bastard! Let go!
Li Zeyan angrily pushed Di Chenxiaos hand away. This guy used his height to pinch his face. He was really hateful. She really wanted to chop off his hands.
Damn Di Chenxiao.
You guys
Mo Ruyue looked at the two of them ying and hesitated.
Sister, look at him. Hes bullying me. Li Zeyan revealed an aggrieved expression.
His face turned even redder.
This Di Chenxiao was simply disrespectful. You two are like children.
One was Li Sansui, and the other was Di Sisui.
MO Ruyue pinched the space between her eyebrows.
He bullied me first.
Li Zeyan whispered. If he didnt want to hide his identity, he would have pressed Di Chenxiao under him so that he wouldnt dare to provoke him again.
Di Chenxiao, this bastard!
l was just joking with him.
Di Chenxiao shrugged innocently.
Li Zeyans face was quite soft.
Looking at Li Zeyans angry face, Di Chenxiao felt a burst of joy in his heart.
Ah Chen, youll be driving the carriage from now on. Do you know how to drive a carriage?
Mo Ruyue asked.
l know. Let me drive the carriage.
Di Chenxiao took the initiative to take on the task. What was so difficult about driving a carriage?
Where are we going next? Big sister.
Li Zeyan entered the carriage and lowered the curtain. He didnt want to look at Di Chenxiao.
This guy should go back to the north.
It was really annoying to stay here all the time.
Lets move forward. Well stay at the next stop.
Mo Ruyue replied. She did not know much about the South, so she did not know what was good about it.
Outside, Di Chenxiao drove the carriage for a long time before the horse suddenly stopped.
It was as if there was danger waiting ahead. What happened outside?
Mo Ruyue lifted the curtain and asked.
There were mountains all around. There must be some bandits blocking the way.
She thought to herself.
l dont know. The horse suddenly stopped moving.
Di Chenxiao shook his head. No matter how hard he whipped the horse, it didnt move at all.
Be careful of your surroundings. Is there any danger? MO Ruyue lowered her voice and reminded him.
Things are abnormal, there must be evil.
Perhaps there was a monster hiding in the dark, which was why the horse was so abnormal.
It shouldnt be a spirit monster. Those spirit monsters should have taken the initiative to escape when they saw me.
He was the Wolf King, how could those monsters be his match?
Even the most powerful spiritual monster would not dare to provoke him.
At this moment, a ck figure slowly descended from the sky.
His long silver hair fluttered in the wind, and his handsome face was cold.
Especially that pair of deep eyes that were staring at MO Ruyue.
His dark red eyes shrank and his thin lips were half-pursed. He finally found
MO Ruyue.
Who is this guy?
His aura was unusually strong, and his entire body carried a cold and solemn aura. His gaze was looking over.
Di Chenxiao frowned and secretly guessed the identity of the man in front of him.
This fellow was also a demonic beast, but its strength was extremely powerful.
If they fought, what were his chances of winning?
MO Ruyue was slightly stunned. Then, she slowly said, Master.
When she saw Ming Sihan again, MO Ruyue felt a lump in her throat. She was both scared and happy.
She was finally found.
Ming Sihans cold eyes warmed up when he saw MO Ruyue.
Still noting over?
Ming Sihans voice rang out. He was very angry, but also very happy.
Complicated emotions shed across his eyes.
He finally found Ruyue.
Right in front of him.
MO Ruyue heard Ming Sihans voice and felt that he was angry.
She felt even more wronged. She should be the one angry.
After all, she was the one who was wanted and the one who was running away.
She didnt know why Ming Sihan was angry.
Now, he was even calling her over fiercely.
She just refused to go over.
I just wont go over.
MO Ruyue said in a rebellious manner and jumped off the carriage.
She crossed her arms and confronted Ming Sihan.
Li Zeyan lifted the curtain of the carriage and saw Ming Sihan not far away.
It was over. His carefree days with his sister were over.
She didnt expect Ming Sihan to personallye looking for her sister.
Ming Sihan flew up andnded in front of MO Ruyue.
Why did you leave the Demon Realm?
Ming Sihan suppressed his desire to hug MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue did not expect Ming Sihan toe to her side on his own.
Hearing Ming Sihans question, MO Ruyue raised her head slightly and looked at Ming Sihan up close. His eyes were like a painting, and there seemed to be something in his deep eyes.
To live.
Mo Ruyue didnt hide anything and spoke straightforwardly.
Wasnt it because he wanted to live well that he left the Demon Realm?
Did 1 say I wanted to kill you?
Although you didnt say you would kill me, you didnt say you wouldnt either.
You just didnt want to see me, so I was afraid.
MO Ruyue said gloomily.
After all, it was true that she was a spy.
It was just that he had turned over a new leaf.
You are my disciple. Even if you have made a mistake, I will not pursue it. I have never thought of killing you.
Because he liked MO Ruyue, he would tolerate everything.
Moreover, undercover was a thing of the past.
He had seen MO Ruyues sacrifice for the Demon Realm.
Master, is what you said true?
MO Ruyue stared at Ming Sihan, feeling touched.
When have I ever lied to you?
Ming Sihan asked. This woman had defined her own life and death.
Then why didnt you tell me earlier, Master? If you had told me earlier, 1 wouldnt have to hide.
She thought that she could only live in hiding for the rest of her life.
Alright, everything is in the past. Follow me back to the Demon Realm. Ming Sihan changed the topic. He just wanted MO Ruyue to apologize to him.
Who knew that not only did she not apologize, she even left.
Let him search the entire world.
Fortunately, he had finally found it.
Master, whats with the arrest warrant?
Mo Ruyue asked again.
Theres strength in numbers. Itll be easier to find you this way.
They just want to find you and bring you back. They wont do anything to you.
Did you think that they would kill you if they found you?
MO Ruyue nodded in embarrassment.
She indeed thought so.
Without my orders, none of them can touch you. If anyone touches you, I will destroy their entire n.
Ming Sihan said domineeringly.
l knew it, Master. Youre the best to me.
Mo Ruyue hugged Ming Sihans arm. As expected, he was still the master she could trust.
Looking at the woman beside him acting coquettishly, all the anger in Ming Sihans heart disappeared.
Only tenderness remained.
Then why arent you following me back to the Demon Realm? Dont you want the position of Demon Lord anymore?
Ming Sihan raised his eyebrows slightly. He knew that MO Ruyue had always been thinking about his position as the Demon Lord..
Chapter 810 - 810: Fated to Meet Again
Chapter 810: Fated to Meet Again
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Yes, yes, of course I want it. Its just that how am I going to face so many people in the Demon Realm when I go back? Moreover, I dont want Master to be in a difficult position.
Ming Sihan was so good to her, she couldnt be ungrateful.
Her identity as a spy was there. The people of the demon world should have some opinions about her.
What if they all rebelled against Ming Sihan?
MO Ruyue was a little worried.
If Ming Sihan was in a difficult position, she would rather stay outside.
Ill face them however I want. Im the master of the Demon World. If anyone is unconvinced, Ill conquer them by force.
Ming Sihan wasnt worried about this at all. He was the master of the demon world, and whatever he said would be done.
The weak could only listen to the strong.
Whoever did not listen would have to pay the price.
If they were disobedient, then they would beat them up until they were obedient.
It was that simple and crude.
Hearing Ming Sihans words, MO Ruyue was relieved.
Alright then, Ill go back with Master.
Returning to the Demon Realm was better than wandering around outside.
During this period of time, she had already visited many scenic spots.
He had a good time and could be considered as giving himself a holiday.
Ming Sihans gaze fell on Di Chenxiaos body. He looked him up and down. If he guessed correctly, this guys original body should be a wolf.
He was born with good skin and had white hair like him. However, his hair was more shiny, which this vulgar man could notpare to.
His hair was so messy that it was obvious that he had not taken care of it properly.
Where did this vulgar fellowe from?
Their strength was not his match.
Where did Ruyue find a fake version of him?
When Ming Sihan was sizing up Di Chenxiao, Di Chenxiao was also sizing up Ming Sihan.
It turned out that this guy was the Demon Lord of the Demon Realm and Ruyues master. Ruyues identity was really not simple.
Who is he?
Ming Sihan asked with an unfriendly look in his eyes.
She had only left the demon world for a short while, and another man had actually appeared beside her!
Ruyues peach blossoms were really exuberant. Then, let him pinch off this extra peach blossom.
Just as MO Ruyue was about to introduce Di Chenxiao, Di Chenxiao took the initiative and said, Im Di Chenxiao, the Wolf King of the Northern Wolf n.
Its all thanks to Ruyue who saved me that I can live until now.
After he finished speaking, Di Chenxiao stared at MO Ruyue fervently.
MO Ruyue smiled awkwardly and whispered,Hes Ah Chen.
Ah Chen? How intimate.
Ming Sihan didnt care about Di Chenxiaos introduction. Instead, he was more concerned about how Ruyue addressed Di Chenxiao.
His eyes narrowed, emitting a dangerous aura.
This title is already better than Shens, master.
MO Ruyue said softly. Who asked Di Chenxiaos name to be so hard to pronounce?
Calling Ah Chen directly was the easiest.
Just like Ah Fa, Ah San, and Ah Qiang.
It sounded especially smooth.
It was just a form of address and had no other meaning.
Ming Sihan seemed to be very concerned.
Has his injury recovered?
Ming Sihan asked MO Ruyue as he sized up Di Chenxiao with an unfriendly gaze.
There was a hint of disgust in his eyes.
To be fair, he didnt like Di Chenxiao at all.
Who cared if he was a wolf king or a dog king?
It was nothing to him.
Before MO Ruyue could speak, Di Chenxiao said,My injuries havent fully healed yet. Its all thanks to Ruyues careful care along the way. After saying that, he even deliberately smiled at MO Ruyue.
This scene was particrly ring in Ming Sihans eves.
From now on, you can take care of yourself. Im going to bring Ruyue back to the Demon Realm.
Ming Sihan said coldly. He would not bring Di Chenxiao back to the Demon Realm.
It was obvious that that fellow was plotting something against Ruyue.
How could he bring a threat back to the Demon Realm?
Bringing him back would be creating trouble for himself.
Li Zeyan remained silent. Although he didnt like Ming Sihan, he disliked Di Chenxiao even more.
Di Chenxiao always liked to bully him.
When he heard Ming Sihan asking Di Chenxiao to leave, he showed a gloating expression.
Di Chenxiaos gaze fell on MO Ruyue and he pretended to be pitiful.Ruyue, are you going to leave me alone? I have no money, and I have nowhere to go.
He naturally wanted to stay by Ruyues side.
This
MO Ruyue couldnt ask Ming Sihan to bring Di Chenxiao back to the demon world.
After all, she was not the true master of the Demon Realm yet.
Why dont I give you some money and you decide on your own? Its best if you go back to the north.
As MO Ruyue spoke, she took out an ingot of gold from her storage ring.
He definitely couldnt bring him back to the demon world. Ming Sihan wouldnt allow him to enter the demon world.
It was obvious from Ming Sihans expression that he didnt like Di Chenxiao.
The corner of Di Chenxiaos mouth twitched. His purpose was to follow MO
Ruyue.
However, MO Ruyue wanted to use gold to get rid of him.
Was she looking down on him?
Ming Sihan was very satisfied with MO Ruyues actions. If Ruyue wanted to bring Di Chenxiao back to the demon world, he would be very angry.
After all, in his eyes, Di Chenxiao was a wild man.
Ruyue had been with this wild man for the past few days.
Thinking of this, he was already a little angry.
However, he did not show it.
He had only just found Ruyue and did not want to say anything angry. You saved his life and even took good care of him. Why would you need to give him money? Anyone with a conscience should give you money.
Ming Sihan nced at Di Chenxiao with disdain. As he spoke, he grabbed MO Ruyues hand and asked her to take the money back.
What was she thinking? She even gave him money?
Are you stupid and rich?
Ruyue, you dont have to give me money. You should repay me with your body for saving my life. Ruyue, Im yours from now on.
Di Chenxiaos face was full of seriousness, and he didnt seem to be joking at all.
Ming Sihans face darkened when he heard this.
Li Zeyan looked at her with disdain.
Theres no need to be like this. Back then, I only saved you because it was convenient.
MO Ruyue felt a little awkward.
Then, MO Ruyue continued,You go back to your north, Ill go back to my demon world.
You still want to see me again?
Ming Sihan said with a dark face.
You still have to say the polite words, whispered MO Ruyue.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin caught up from behind.
Along the way, they panted heavily.
He finally found the Demon Venerable.
They also found MO Ruyue, Li Zeyan, and an unfamiliar man.
Looking at that man, Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin both looked at Ming Sihan. Wasnt the demon angry when he saw that man?
Although there was no obvious anger on the demons face, they could still feel his anger.
Senior Brother, why are you two here?
Mo Ruyue was surprised to see the two of them.
She was about to walk towards her senior brother, but just as she took a step, Ming Sihan grabbed her cor.
Master, youre strangling me.
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes and stopped in her tracks.
Where are you going?
l didnt go anywhere.
MO Ruyue replied helplessly. She wanted to walk over a little.
Ming Sihan was really
l didnt go anywhere.
l dont want to. I want to move around. I have ADHD
MO Ruyue deliberately retorted. If she stood there, wouldnt she lose face?
Ming Sihan raised his hand and lightly patted MO Ruyues body. His expression was calm..
Chapter 811 - 811: Supreme of All Fiends
Chapter 811: Supreme of All Fiends
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Eh, why cant I move?
MO Ruyue wanted to move her body, but her hands and feet wouldnt listen to her.
She nced at Ming Sihan from the corner of her eyes. It must be this guys doing.
Dont move.
Ming Sihan said in a low voice.
MO Ruyue snorted.
Your guts are getting more and morewless.
Did I give you too much freedom?
Ming Sihans eyes turned cold. Ruyue seemed to be bing more and more rebellious.
Isnt this also following the master? Like master, like disciple.
MO Ruyue whispered.
Ming Sihan listened to MO Ruyues words and felt that he should also shut her mouth.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin looked at each other without batting an eyelid. We came with the Demon Venerable, but we moved slowly.
Ye Junlin replied. Their strength was rtively weak, and some of them could not keep up with the Demon Venerables footsteps.
It was not easy for him to catch up to the Demon Venerable.
They were exhausted.
How did you find me?
MO Ruyue asked again. She had disguised herself as the old woman on the way here, so it shouldnt be so easy to be discovered, right?
This time, she was in a hurry, so she didnt have time to put on her makeup.
We met a person in the Fairy Cave. He told us that you were heading south. As long as we head south, we will meet you.
Ye Junlin replied honestly. What that fellow said was indeed true. They had finally found Ruyue.
However, MO Ruyues mouth twitched when she heard that.
She had never told anyone that she was heading south.
It was probably because she pointed in the wrong direction that she was found.
Was she being too smart for her own good?
She had lied to Fan Jian and the others that she had gone to the west. In the end, Fan Jian had randomly pointed to the south in order to deceive the Demon Venerable and the others.
Perhaps this was fate.
We should go back.
Ming Sihan summoned a sword and carried MO Ruyue onto it.
As for Li Zeyan and Di Chenxiao, they were not under his jurisdiction.
Master, its too high. Lower it.
Mo Ruyue hurriedly shouted. If they continued to climb, they would be shoulder to shoulder with the sun.
He was still a little afraid.
Are you afraid? I thought you were really bold.
Although he was mocking her, he still lowered his voice.
As he held MO Ruyue in his arms, Ming Sihan smelled a fragranceing from Ruyues body.
This girl always had some demonic beasts around her.
Could it be that Ruyue had a demon-absorbing physique?
Li Zeyan was a demonic beast, and so was the dog king.
Of course, Li Zeyan was not mature enough to pose a threat.
That dog king was the real threat.
Mo Ruyue was dressed in red and her skin was fair. Her cheeks were slightly red as the wind blew.
Fortunately, Ming Sihan was slow. If he had been faster, her face might have frozen into ice.
Hearing Ming Sihans words, MO Ruyue was speechless. What else could she
Humans had times when they were timid.
Under normal circumstances, she was quite bold.
Li Zeyan watched MO Ruyue being taken away by Ming Sihan without saying a word.
After all, Ming Sihan was her sisters master.
l just arrived and 1 have to go back.
Ye Junlin looked at the departing figure and felt like he had made a wasted trip.
He had chased after the Demon Venerable from afar, but the Demon Venerable had already settled everything.
Ye Yunfeng nced at Li Zeyan and knew that this child was Ruyues younger brother.
Although he wasnt his biological brother, he was still his brother in name.
Are we going back together?
Yes, yes.
Li Zeyan hurriedly nodded. Even if Ye Yunfeng didnt say anything, he would still take the initiative to follow Ye Yunfeng and the others.
If his sister was in the Demon Realm, he would also be in the Demon Realm.
He wanted to be inseparable from his sister.
If you leave, what about me?
Seeing that he was about to be left behind, Di Chenxiao couldnt help but ask.
Could it be that he was left behind alone?
Although he didnt like to be with people, they parted just like that.
He still found it hard to ept.
Ruyue had been taken away by the demon lord, and now Li Zeyan was leaving with these people.
He was alone.
Cant you go back to the north yourself? They wont take you back to the Demon Realm.
Li Zeyan said to Di Chenxiao. He didnt like to let this guy go to the Devil World.
The demon probably wouldnt like Di Chenxiao going over.
Ye Yunfeng had long noticed this fellow and couldnt help but ask, Who is this guy?
He had long white hair and a strange red mark on his forehead. His facial features were deep, and his eyebrows were like sharp swords. His sharp eyes emitted the wildness of a wolf.
He was dressed in white and had a sharp aura.
His aura was quite strong.
However,pared to their Demon Venerables, he was still much inferior.
After all, the Demon Venerable was the supreme of all demons.
He is the Wolf King of the north. Big sister saved his life. Now that his injuries have recovered, he refuses to return to his north and has been relying on us.
Li Zeyan said with some disdain. He didnt like Di Chenxiao at all.
Hes the Wolf King of the North? Isnt that a demonic beast?
Ye Junlins expression was grave.
That guy was actually a demonic beast.
Whats wrong with demonic beasts? Isnt it good?
Li Zeyan asked.
Apart from Di Chenxiao being a demonic beast, he was also a demonic beast.
However, he had never revealed his identity.
Its not bad, its just a little rare. Its said that demonic beasts are very powerful.
Ordinary people were very afraid of demonic beasts.
Ye Junlin said thoughtfully. Ordinary demonic beasts were still rtively rare.
Demonic beasts needed to transform into human form, and it would take at least a hundred years to transform into human form.
There was not much hostility between humans and demonic beasts. It was just that humans had always been in awe of demonic beasts.
This was because demonic beasts were powerful while humans were weak. I dont think thats right. If he was strong, he wouldnt have been injured.
Li Zeyan nced at Di Chenxiao, his eyes filled with disgust. To think that this guy was the Wolf King.
In fact, it was just that.
If it wasnt for his sister, this Wolf King would have been finished long ago.
It was simply embarrassing for the demon beasts.
When Di Chenxiao heard Li Zeyans words, his face sank. This guy really had a way of saying things.
He was indeed a demonic beast, but his opponent was also a demonic beast. Moreover, it was not just one demonic beast, but many demonic beasts.
Lets not talk anymore. Lets hurry back.
Ye Yunfeng urged. Who cared what that guy was? It didnt have much to do with their Devil Realm, so there was no need to bother.
Yes.
Ye Junlin nodded and said to Li Ze, Lets go.
Alright.
Li Zeyan was happy. Fortunately, he was not left behind.
As for Di Chenxiao, he nced back and saw him sitting alone in the carriage, looking a little lonely.
He opened his mouth and said, Go back to the north yourself. Ive given you the carriage and everything inside.
Li Zeyan said to Di Chenxiao,
They were already considered good people to the end.
He left everything he needed to Di Chenxiao.
Di Chenxiao watched Li Zeyan leave. Only he and the carriage were left.
Im alone again.
He sighed softly, feeling a little helpless.
He looked to the north. It was time to go back and take revenge.
After he was done with his revenge, he would go to the Demon Realm to look for Li Zeyan and Ruyue.
He was destined to be a lone wolf..
Chapter 812 - 812: How To Deal With The Saintess
Chapter 812 - 812: How To Deal With The Saintess
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Western Desert.
Xin Zhao spat twice and wiped his face. The sand had already flown into his mouth.
He had been waiting for his masters return with his junior brothers.
He was thirsty and sun-drenched here, especially with the huge difference in temperature between morning and evening. He was extremely hot during the day and extremely cold at night.
Senior Brother, will Master be fine? It had been so many days, why was Master still not back?
Senior Brother, we only have food and water. We dont have much left. We cant hold on for too long.
They usually ate and drank very little to preserve their strength.
Xin Zhaos expression was grave. He walked outside and looked into the distance.
However, he did not see anything.
Helpless, he returned to the temporary room.
At least it could block the wind and sand.
At this moment, he did not want to say a word.
Saying another sentence was tiring.
At this moment, a voice transmission talisman appeared in front of them.
Xin Zhao frowned. Did something big happen?
He kept the voice transmission talisman and read its contents.
After listening, the voice transmission talisman disappeared.
The voice transmission talisman was sent by Ji Xianfeng, and he had given it to Ji Xianfeng before.
He did not expect it toe in handy now.
This voice transmission talisman could only find him.
Third Senior Brother, what happened?
The two junior brothers got up from the ground. Their expressions were not too good.
She looked haggard.
They said that Junior Sister Ruyue has been found and has returned to the
Demon Realm.
Zhao Xin spoke slowly. After the voice transmission talisman was heard, it disappeared.
It was as if it had never appeared before.
What? MO Ruyue has already returned to the Devil Realm?
Didnt they say that MO Ruyue was in the west? We didnt see her on our way here.
Then what should we do now?
The two Junior Brothers felt incredulous. They had searched so hard here, but they didnt expect that MO Ruyue had already returned to the Devil World.
He must have been captured by the people of the Demon Realm.
MO Ruyue was dead.
Zhao Xin thought for a moment and said, You two go back first. Ill wait for Master to return here.
Isnt this a bad idea?
The two junior brothers were a little hesitant.
If he let his senior brother wait for his master here alone, would his master say anything?
Of course, you can stay here. When you cant hold on anymore, dont cry. Xin Zhao said coldly.
The two junior brothers thought about it and felt that what their third senior brother said made sense.
Thus, they left some food and water, and some for themselves.
There was still some distance to go before they could reach the town and buy some food.
Senior brother, Ill leave this to you.
Yes.
Xin Zhao responded in a low voice. He sat on the ground and meditated. Meditation was the most energy-saving thing.
After the two junior brothers put down their things, they left in a hurry.
They did not know when their master would return. It was not a good idea to wait here. The three of them would consume more things. Leaving one person to wait for their master might be the best way.
Xin Zhao sat in the temporary house for a day and a night.
Finally, on the morning of the second day, he heard some movement outside.
He quickly got up and went outside to take a look.
Ling Shoumo, who was dressed in white, appeared in Zhao Xins line of sight.
Master.
Xin Zhao called out in a low voice and hurried over.
His masters expression was not too good. Master, you didnt find Junior Sister Ruyue, did you?
Zhao Xin asked despite knowing the answer.
He just wanted to see his masters reaction.
Back then, he had said that it was impossible for Junior Sister to go to a ce with harsh conditions like the desert.
How could a girl with tender skin go to that kind of ce to suffer?
In the end, his master did not believe it and insisted on searching deep in the desert.
As expected, he would not give up until he reached the Yellow River and would not shed tears until he saw the coffin.
Of course, he did not dare to say these words out loud. He could only say them in his heart.
If he said it out loud, he would be a treasonous person.
Some words could only be kept in his heart.
Ling Shoumo shook his head. He had already searched the desert.
However, he could not find MO Ruyue.
Where exactly was she?
Actually, Junior Sister Ruyue is already in the Demon Realm. Zhao Xin was silent for a moment.
After saying that, Zhao Xin stared at Ling Shoumo.
He carefully observed every expression on his masters face.
Unfortunately, his master was expressionless and did not move.
Ling Shoumos gaze fell on Xin Zhao, as if he was asking if it was true.
Ruyue is in the Demon Realm now?
So, he had wasted all those days in the desert?
Yes, I received Second Senior Brothers voice transmission talisman yesterday. He said that Ruyue is in the Demon Realm.
Zhao Xin replied.
Where did you find her?
This, this disciple doesnt know. I guess Ill only know when I go back. His intuition told him that MO Ruyue had nevere to the west.
But the man from before didnt seem to be lying.
There was only one reason. MO Ruyue had lied to that man, so he had given them false information.
demon world
Many people were discussing this matter behind the Saintesss back.
One had to know that this saintess was once a spy from the Xuanling Immortal Sect.
She didnt know how the demon would treat her.
The punishment of spies in the Demon Realm had always been strict.
However, it still depended on the damage the other party had caused to the Demon Realm.
The harshest punishment was to be a human pig. This was the harshest and most terrifying punishment.
Moreover, it was the Holy Maiden who came up with it. He wondered if she would use this method on herself.
The guy who was turned into a human pig was not only a spy, but he also bullied the young girl among the people and then cruelly killed the young girl. That guy pushed all the evidence to the Demon Realm.
Of course, this wasnt the only thing that that fellow had done. There were other things, but this one had the most severe impact.
In the end, the matter was exposed, and that fellow fled the Demon Realm.
After they were captured, they naturally couldnt just leave them alone.
Other than that, there didnt seem to be a second person who had been turned into a human pig.
They were all curious whether the second person would be the Saintess.
However, this Saintess was controversial. Although she was a spy, she did not do anything that would infuriate both humans and gods.
He had indeed made a lot of contributions to the Demon Realm.
That was why they were curious about how the Demon Lord would deal with the Saintess.
In addition to this identity, the Saintess was also the disciple of the Demon Venerable.
Theyers of this avatar stacked on his body, making him different from the others.
Seeing MO Ruyue return, He Xi said,My ancestor, youre finally back.
Long time no see, Divine Doctor.
MO Ruyue greeted He Xi in a familiar manner.
He Xi opened her arms, wanting to give MO Ruyue a warm hug.
However, as soon as she opened her arms, she saw Ming Sihans cold gaze.
He could only silently withdraw his hands.
He didnt want to be eaten alive by this guy.
Ruyue, I missed you so much.
Godly Doctor, youre exaggerating.
MO Ruyues mouth twitched. Was there a need to be so exaggerated?
How am I exaggerating? You dont even know how Ive been living these past few days. Ruyue, when are you going to cook? You must get me something to eat. Look, Ive lost so much weight.
He Xi said pitifully.
The food in the Demon Realm was too bad.
Ming Sihan didnt even need to eat and didnt care about the lives of others..
Chapter 813 - 813: The New Saint
Chapter 813 - 813: The New Saint
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Okay, Ill definitely make a lot of delicious food.
MO Ruyue was quite touched when she thought about how someone still cared about her culinary skills.
Ruyue, youre back.
MO Chengfeng suppressed the excitement in his heart and stared deeply at MO Ruyue. He wondered if she was doing well outside.
Senior Brother MO, Im back.
Returning to this ce, MO Ruyues heart was filled with emotion.
She knew what she was going to face next.
To be honest, she was still a little anxious, but when she thought of what Ming Sihan said, she wasnt as scared anymore.
Youve only been back for a few days. Why did you suddenly leave the Demon Realm?
MO Chengfeng couldnt help but say. Everyone was worried about Ruyue.
There were so many people outside looking for her.
They were afraid that others would find MO Ruyue before they did.
At that time, Ruyue might be in danger.
Its still not
Mo Ruyue nced weakly at Ming Sihan and didnt dare to say anything. After all, this guy was a Demon Venerable. He had to give some face in front of outsiders.
He didnt want to anger the Demon Lord.
When she sat on the position of the Demon Lord, she would be able to turn the tables and be the master.
Go back and have a good rest. Come to the Demon Pceter.
Ming Sihan said lightly.
Ruyues hair was a little messy from the wind.
Moreover, he had something important to discuss with He Xi.
Yes, Master.
MO Ruyue responded and listened to Ming Sihan!s arrangements.
You go first.
Oh.
MO Ruyue turned around and walked back to her original courtyard.
Ming Sihan withdrew his gaze from MO Ruyue and looked at He Xi. He said coldly, I have something to tell you.
Come with me.
With that, he walked towards the Demon Pce.
He Xi was confused.
Did this guy have something to discuss with him? It was most likely because of a rtionship.
Alright.
He Xi followed Ming Sihans footsteps. This guy had already found MO Ruyue, shouldnt he be very happy?
He was really an unfathomable man.
There was no joy or anger on his face.
To put it bluntly, he was actually a person with facial paralysis.
What are you thinking about?
He Xis voice hadnt been heard along the way, so he knew that He Xi must be thinking about something.
Im not thinking about anything.
He Xi shook his head.
Ming Sihan didnt care and walked straight into his bedroom.
He knew He Xi too well. Once that guy didnt say anything, he might be plotting something in his heart.
But he was no longer in the mood to guess what He Xi was thinking.
When He Xi walked into the bedroom, he waved his sleeve and closed the door tightly.
Why are you closing the door in broad daylight? Is there no venttion?
He Xi turned around and looked at the door that had suddenly closed, feeling a little uneasy.
Why was this guy so worried?
He felt like he was Ming Sihans tool to solve problems.
Furthermore, it was something he had never experienced before.
This kind of thing was not clear to the bystanders.
As someone beside him, he could see this kind of thing clearly.
Of course, we have to talk behind closed doors.
How have you been? Tell me, whats the matter?
He Xi seemed to have gotten used to it. She walked over to the armchair at the side and sat down.
Lets hear why this guy is trapped.
Anyway, he had plenty of time.
How should I face MO Ruyue? I feel that Ruyue doesnt like me very much. She prefers the position of Demon Lord.
Ming Sihans voice sounded a little dejected.
Could it be that that position was more attractive than him?
Uh What do you want me to say? He Xi was speechless.
He was indeed a rtionship consultant.
And this was the question that this guy was asking.
Help me think of a way to make Ruyue like me too.
Ming Sihans expression was grave.
He always felt that he was inferior to the position of Demon Venerable. If he had known earlier, he would not have promised the position of Demon Venerable back then.
As a result, Ruyue was constantly thinking about the position of Demon Venerable.
You cant force yourself when ites to feelings. He Xi didnt have any good ideas.
Wasnt MO Ruyue interested in Ming Sihan at all?
After all, this was a one-in-ten-thousand man, a dragon among men.
She had face, figure, and strength.
He Xi said a lot to Ming Sihan, but Ming Sihan didnt know how much he had listened to.
All in all, sincerity works. If it really doesnt work, go to the temple in the human world to worship the God of Marriage. Its said to be very effective.
Are you sure?
Ming Sihan was a little confused. Was it really useful to pray to the God of Marriage?
It would be great if it was useful.
Of course Im sure. You cant go wrong listening to me!
He Xi patted his chest, his expression as if he had no intention of settling the score with him.
Ming Sihan believed He Xis words even more.
Suddenly, Ming Sihan thought of something and couldnt help but say, How do you know all this?
I
He Xi was stumped by Ming Sihans question. Ming Sihan narrowed his eyes, sending out a dangerous signal.
He pretended to be calm and said,Of course, Ill only tell you if Ive seen someone do it before and it really works.
In fact, it was what he had read in the book of the human world.
This guy had already asked him, so he had to say something. Otherwise, he would seem ignorant.
It was rare for Ming Sihan to ask her.
However, after he said it, Ming Sihan started suspecting him again. How heartless.
He had never experienced such a thing before, so how would he know how to deal with it?
He could just try his luck.
Ill believe you for the time being. You dont have to believe it, youre so powerful anyway.
He Xi snorted and rolled his eyes.
MO Ruyue returned to the Devil World and soon became the subject of everyones discussion.
Everyone was looking forward to the Demon Lord punishing MO Ruyue.
When she returned to the courtyard, she saw Shen Yunyan with her arms crossed over her chest, looking at MO Ruyue with a smug expression.
What are you doing here?
Mo Ruyue furrowed her brows slightly, her expression somewhat displeased.
I hate this guy appearing here.
Shen Yunyan approached MO Ruyue and said,Very soon, your position as the Holy Maiden will be lost, and I will be the new Holy Maiden. You might not even be able to protect your people.
MO Ruyue was a spy and would definitely be turned into a human pig.
She could already imagine MO Ruyues miserable appearance.
Its broad daylight. Why are you dreaming? Where did you get the confidence to be the new Holy Maiden?
MO Ruyue looked confused.
Could this be the legendary Pugilist girl?
In the Demon Realm, there were many women who were more powerful than
Shen Yunyan. She hadnt even been punished, and Shen Yunyan had already
started to dream of bing a saintess?
Speechless mother opened the door for Speechless. Speechless had arrived home.
With my beauty.
Shen Yunyan touched her face. She was very confident in her own face.
She believed that as long as the Demon Lord interacted with her for a long time, he would definitely look at her differently..
Chapter 814 - 814: There Are Many Senior Brothers in the Demon World
Chapter 814 - 814: There Are Many Senior Brothers in the Demon World
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
If you want to be a Saintess, looks are only secondary. The most important thing is strength.
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes at Shen Yunyan.
What was this woman thinking?
The demon had seen all kinds of beautiful women. With Shen Yunyans appearance, MO Ruyue felt that she was even worse than her.
She had not even managed to move the demon, where did Shen Yunyan get her confidence from?
The Demon Lord was not a man who could eat anything.
Youre just jealous of me.
Shen Yunyan nced at MO Ruyue and nodded slightly, revealing a proud expression.
Then, she continued, l cant talk to you anymore. I have to prepare for the Saintess election.
After that, Shen Yunyan twisted her slender waist and left.
Mo Ruyue was left speechless.
MO Ruyue took a bath, washed her hair, and then washed her entire body.
After washing up, MO Ruyue changed into a clean golden-ck dress. The waist was slender, and the ck color entuated her fair skin.
A golden hairpin was used to tie up her hair. Her facial features were exquisite, and her eyebrows were as delicate as a painting.
Her slightly curled eyshes cast a shadow under her eye sockets, and her every frown and smile was mesmerizing.
She looked at herself in the mirror for a long time,
She touched her face and felt that she was extremely beautiful.
She did not know if it was her imagination, but she felt that she looked better than before.
At this moment, the sound of footsteps could be heard outside the courtyard.
She stood up and walked outside, only to see Xia Zhixinging in.
Junior Sister Ruyue, youre finally back.
Xia Zhixing sized up MO Ruyue and finally felt relieved.
He had not heard from Junior Sister Ruyue for a long time. He thought that she had encountered some trouble.
He finally returned to the Demon Realm safely.
Ive made Senior Brother worry during this period of time.
Its good that youre back. Otherwise, everyone would be very worried about you.
Xia Zhixing slowly let out a sigh of relief.
You must have suffered a lot outside this time, right?
Alright, Ive been touring the mountains and rivers all this time because Im worried that Ill be found. Everything else is fine.
MO Ruyue shrugged her shoulders. She felt that she had gained a lot from this trip.
She even became a queen in the north and took in a bunch of underlings.
Apart from the fact that the conditions there were a little worse than the Demon Realm, everything else was quite good.
She missed the days when she was the queen of the Fairy Cave.
She hung out with a bunch of men all day long, listening to them tell jokes and all kinds of dirty jokes.
Those men wanted to say something dirty to make her shy.
Who was MO Ruyue?
In the modern world, he was an experienced driver. How could he be embarrassed by a group of mens dirty jokes?
She directly drew inferences from one instance, making the group of men feel inferior.
From then on, he no longer dared to casually say dirty jokes in front of her.
The group of men were embarrassed by her.
Junior Sister Ruyue!
At this moment, another voice rang out. MO Ruyue looked outside and saw Qi Shaoyu hurrying over.
Im finally back.
Qi Shaoyu stared at MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue met Qi Shaoyus gaze with aplicated expression.
She smiled and said,Yes, I made my senior brothers worry.
These two senior brothers used to be good-looking dogs, and they might be good-looking dogs now.
However, now that she had be prettier, her attitude towards her had also changed drastically.
She did not want to pursue the past.
However, she did mind, but she would not say it out loud.
Among the six senior brothers, she liked the first four more.
At the very least, although those four senior brothers did not treat her very well before she became good-looking, they did not make things difficult for her.
In addition, because of her undercover identity, she did not dare to greet her senior brother much, so they did not interact much.
Qi Shaoyu had always been the one targeting her.
Xia Zhixing was just blind and listened to Shen Yunyans words. She didnt target her.
It seemed that no matter in the modern world or here.
Good-looking people were often treated better.
There was a saying that people often heard, starting with looks, loyal to talent.
MO Ruyues eyes were unblinking as if she was thinking about something.
Junior Sister Ruyue, what are you thinking about? Qi Shaoyu asked.
MO Ruyue came back to her senses and looked at Qi Shaoyu with aplicated expression. Im thinking about the past.
What happened in the past?
Qi Shaoyu asked. His heart skipped a beat when he saw MO Ruyues expression.
He couldnt help but think of the past.
He really didnt want to recall those things.
Sixth Senior Brother, youve changed a lot.
MO Ruyue said with a sigh, but she did not say it directly.
There was no point in talking about it.
Qi Shaoyus expression didnt look too good. He curled his fingers as the past shed through his mind.
At this moment, Jing Xichen appeared at the entrance of the courtyard.
Junior Sister, where did he go?
Jing Xichen walked in.
This time, Junior Sister Ruyue made it easy for them to find her.
When MO Ruyue saw Jing Xichening over, she quickly went up to him and gave him a hug.Fourth Senior Brother, I missed you so much. Be gentle, be gentle. Im about to die from your strangtion. Jing Xichen looked at the woman in his arms with doting eyes.
He raised his hand and rubbed MO Ruyues head.
I dont know. Everyone is very worried about you this time.
His deep eyes were filled with helplessness.
He had searched many ces, but still found nothing.
MO Ruyue released Jing Xichen and whispered,When I saw the arrest warrant issued by the Demon Realm, I thought that they were going to capture me and execute me. Thats why Ive been hiding and fleeing.
She could ept the punishment, but she did not want to die.
The Demon Lord and Miracle Doctor He Xi were probably discussing how to punish her.
Even if the Demon Lord wanted to protect her, he would have to punish her symbolically.
MO Ruyue thought to herself. She could understand Ming Sihans actions.
You, even if the demon wants to punish you, I will protect you with my life.
Jing Xichen said firmly.
He owed Ruyue a favor, and it was a life-saving favor.
A blue figure walked in from outside. Baili Xi went straight to the point and said,Ruyue, you made it so difficult for us to find you.
Second Senior Brother.
MO Ruyue walked towards Baili Xijian. She did not hug him, but looked at him with a wronged expression.
You must have suffered a lot outside this time, right?
Im the dignified Holy Maiden of the Demon World. How can I be at a disadvantage? The ones who suffer will always be others. Although she was homeless, she would not suffer.
Because she had the ability.
You dont know this, but when I was in the Fairy Cave, I took in a bunch of underlings. They all called me Queen.
MO Ruyue looked pleased and continued,At that time, I had more than 20 subordinates, and my life was not worse than in the Demon Realm.
Baili Xijian and Jing Xichen looked at each other with smiles in their eyes.
Baili Xijian smiled. It seems that Junior Sister still wants to be a queen. You think that the outside world is better, right?
Thats not bad. Its not very good, but its not very bad either.
If the conditions allowed, she really wanted to return to the Fairy Cave.
Then, MO Ruyue coughed lightly and said with a serious expression,Although being the queen of the Fairy Cave is indeed not bad, 1 still prefer to be in the Demon Realm because there are many senior brothers in the Demon Realm!
She was very good at bootlicking.
Although she said that it was nothing, she knew that her senior brothers would definitely like to hear such hypocritical words..
Chapter 815 - 815: Worship
Chapter 815 - 815: Worship
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Qi Shaoyu and Xia Zhixing felt bad when they saw Ruyue s obvious difference in treatment.
But they were already used to it.
Anyway, it wasnt the first time.
Perhaps they had gone too far in the past, which was why Ruyue treated them so differently.
These were all their own doing.
Fortunately, Ruyue still paid attention to them.
It was just that he wasnt as enthusiastic.
Not long after, a demon subordinate came to the courtyard. Saintess, the Demon Lord invites you.
Hearing the subordinates voice, everyones smiles froze.
Then, his gaze fell on MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyues smile faded and she sighed lightly.Whats going toe wille.
He could only brace himself and face it.
Ruyue, dont worry. Nothing will happen.
Jing Xichenforted her and patted MO Ruyues shoulder.
If anything really happened, he would definitely take Ruyue and leave the Demon Realm.
Yes.
She responded and walked towards the Demon Pce under the gaze of her senior brothers.
Everyone in the Demon Realm was waiting for the Demon Lords verdict on MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue walked into the Demon Pce and felt a chill run down her spine, causing her to shiver uncontrobly.
She raised her head slightly and saw Ming Sihan sitting on the main seat.
Other than Ming Sihan, there seemed to be some unfamiliar faces in the hall.
Almost all of them were middle-aged men and women, and they looked quite prestigious.
She knew that these people belonged to the leaders of the small tribes in the demon world. They had a certain prestige in those small tribes, and they all submitted to Ming Sihan.
Ming Sihan didnt make a sound, and the people inside didnt make any movements either.
In the original version, she thought that Ming Sihan was the only one here.
Greetings, Demon Lord.
MO Ruyue knelt down in front of Ming Sihan. She didnt kneel down easily, but her knees hurt when she knelt down.
But now, in front of so many people, she could only kneel.
Get up.
Ming Sihan quickly asked MO Ruyue to get up. The floor was so cold, it would definitely be ufortable to kneel.
Thank you, Demon Venerable.
MO Ruyue was like a child who had done something wrong. She lowered her head and did not dare to speak.
She quietly waited for her fate.
Everyone, if you have any other opinions, please voice them.
Ming Sihan nodded slightly. His voice was deep and his sharp eyes swept across the crowd.
The people below looked at each other and did not dare to say anything. They could only stand up and say, Everything is up to the Demon Venerable. We have no objections.
The voices of the people below were surprisingly uniform.
Since you have no objections, then lets do it. If theres nothing else, everyone can go back to work.
Ming Sihan dismissed everyone.
Yes.
The people in the hall had all dispersed, leaving only MO Ruyue with a confused expression.
What was going on?
She had just arrived, how could it have ended?
Demon Venerable, whats going on?
MO Ruyue was stunned. She thought she would hear many voices that wanted to execute her, but she was already prepared to face them.
In the end
The meeting ended as soon as he arrived?
In the future, dont call me Demon Venerable. From now on, youre no longer a saintess.
Ming Sihans voice made MO Ruyues heart freeze.
Wouldnt she really be executed?
Didnt that man say that he would protect her?
Was it just to trick her back?
Thinking of this, MO Ruyue felt sad. She trusted Ming Sihan so much, but in the end, he was just lying to her.
His heart seemed to have be heavy. He could not ept being deceived.
If it was really a lie, then what was the difference between Ming Sihan and the people from Xuanling Immortal Sect?
MO Ruyue thought of the worst.
In just a few seconds, she had already thought of several tragic endings.
It waspletely uneptable!
Ming Sihan looked at the woman in front of him seriously and said slowly,
In the future, your identity will only be my disciple. As a spy, you should be executed. However, you have worked hard and paid a lot for the Demon
Realm.
MO Ruyue didnt feel very happy after hearing the mans words.
Instead, she said with some regret,So my position as Saintess is gone? Thinking about it, it was still a little disadvantageous.
Although she didnt have to die, she still had the position of Saintess, but now she didnt.
He had lost a lot of things.
Cant you just be my disciple? 1 only have you as my personal disciple. Im not like Ling Shoumo, whose disciples are all disciples. Youre my only one. Seeing MO Ruyues disappointed expression, Ming Sihan was a little confused.
Wasnt it good to be his only disciple?
Without the position of Saintess, will I not be able to get your position, Master?
All she could think about was Ming Sihans position as the demon lord. Hearing MO Ruyues words, Ming Sihan didnt know whether tough or cry.
As long as you stay by my side obediently, the position of Demon Lord will be yours sooner orter.
Thank you, Master!
MO Ruyue was finally relieved after hearing these words.
The position of Demon Lord was what she wanted the most. If her master left that day, she would be the new master of the Demon World.
Master, I thought you wanted me toe over to listen to the criticism meeting. In the end, you dismissed everyone as soon as 1 arrived.
At that time, she was being stared at by so many people that she thought there would be a heated discussion.
For example, some people asked the demon lord to execute her, while others asked the demon lord to let her go.
Youre my disciple, What right do they have to decide your life and death?
l only asked them toe here to inform them, not to ask them to provide advice.
Ming Sihan said casually.
He did not care about what those people said at all.
MO Ruyue felt that this man was extremely domineering.
His eyes were filled with admiration.
As expected of a man who would never go back on his word in the Demon Realm.
Master.
Mo Ruyue was touched.
She had indeed followed the right person. This man was worth it.
Whats wrong?
Ming Sihan looked at MO Ruyue and saw that her eyes were filled with admiration.
For a moment, he felt a little smug and restless.
In the past, he had never felt that there was anything special about this feeling of being worshipped. Now, he realized that this feeling of being worshipped made him very satisfied.
l feel that Master is really amazing.
Of course. Im your master. If Im not powerful, how can I be your master?
Ming Sihan nodded slightly and was in a good mood.
Master, what do you want to eat? Ill make it for you immediately.
Mo Ruyue looked at the man in front of her seriously.
From now on, she was really a member of the Demon Realm and no longer had any undercover identity.
As long as you make it yourself, I like to eat it.
Alright then, Ill give you some food. Alright, do you need my help?
Ming Sihan asked.
There were some things that he could not say out loud, afraid that he would scare Ruyue.
It seemed like they were getting along quite well now.
Forget it. I can handle it myself.
When MO Ruyue heard that Ming Sihan wanted to help, she suddenly remembered that this man had blown up the kitchen.
It was terrifying just thinking about it..
Chapter 816 - 816: No Matter How Spicy It Is, You Have to Finish
Chapter 816 - 816: No Matter How Spicy It Is, You Have to Finish
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ming Sihan seemed to be able to guess what MO Ruyue was thinking. He coughed lightly, and his dark red eyes looked a little unnatural.
Im no longer the original me, he said slowly. My cooking skills are superb now.
Exquisite culinary skills?
MO Ruyue felt that Ming Sihans words were very suspicious.
Youll know when the timees.
Alright then.
Seeing Ming Sihans serious face, MO Ruyue had no choice but to trust him. Hence, in the kitchen, men and women worked together.
MO Ruyue was initially worried that Ming Sihan would not be able to do it. However, when she saw Ming Sihan holding a kitchen knife and cutting the vegetables, she felt a little uneasy.
She was shocked!
Master, why did you suddenly
This venerable self naturally practiced for a few days. Actually, cutting vegetables and whatnot is not difficult at all.
As he spoke, Ming Sihans hands moved faster and faster.
An ident still happened.
Ming Sihans finger was cut by the kitchen knife.
Blood immediately flowed out.
He frowned slightly and wanted to hide his finger.
However, MO Ruyue still discovered it.
Master, your finger!
She immediately went to Ming Sihan and pulled him to the side.
Then, she used water to clean Ming Sihans wound.
He frowned.
Ming Sihan watched everything silently and saw MO Ruyue frowning. Was she worried and nervous for him?
This feeling was wonderful.
He didnt know how to describe it. It was a feeling he had never felt before.
In fact, the small injury on his hand was nothing.
However, it was a very different feeling for someone to be nervous about such a small injury.
She was quite likable.
Master, wait a moment. Ill get you something to stop the bleeding.
MO Ruyue then went behind the door. He had no idea what she was doing there.
Found it.
MO Ruyue came out with a small white object in her hand. It looked like something from a spider. What is this?
Ming Sihan asked curiously.
This is a spiders egg sac. The white thing outside can be used to stop bleeding.
Where did you hear that from?
When I was young, I used this to stop my bleeding.
Of course, this was used to stop bleeding for small wounds. It could not be used to stop bleeding forrge wounds.
Is it useful?
Probably.
Ming Sihan was speechless, but he still let MO Ruyue treat his wound.
Master, you should sit at the side and wait for the ready-made food. Ill cook the noodles.
MO Ruyue rolled up her sleeves.
She had thought that this man would really seed, but in the end, he still couldnt.
Its fine. Its just a small injury.
Ming Sihan felt a little guilty. He wanted to show off his skills in front of Ruyue, but he failed.
Judging from Ruyues expression, she must be a little disgusted.
Actually, he could do it.
Master, the vegetables you cut wont do either. Theyre too broken. I want to slice them.
Seeing that Ming Sihan still did not give up, MO Ruyue had no choice but to reprimand him to make him give up as soon as possible.
Although there was some improvementpared to thest time, it was still far from enough.
At least the kitchen wasnt blown up this time.
Ming Sihan opened his mouth and found himself speechless.
MO Ruyue cooked the noodles skillfully and added eggs in it, trying to get a poached egg for each Senior Brother.
Ming Sihan couldnt sit still and ran to the pot to take a look.
What kind of egg is this? Why so many?
The water bubbled, and many eggs were washed up, then hidden in the white foam.
It looked very novel.
These are called poached eggs. There are a total of ten of them. Seven of them went to the senior brothers side.
MO Ruyue had already calcted everything.
Everyone had one.
This time, all the senior brothers went out to look for her. It was hard on the senior brothers.
He was going to reward his senior brothers with a bowl of noodles.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Ming Sihans face darkened and he said,Youre going to lower yourself to them too?
Yeah.
In your heart, is this venerable self more important, or are your senior brothers more important?
Ming Sihan tilted his head and asked seriously.
Was he not important to Ruyue at all?
Why did he only have one poached egg?
He was unhappy, but he couldnt show it.
He didnt want Ruyue to think that he was petty.
Do you still need to ask? Of course, Master is more important.
MO Ruyue said without hesitation.
It was almost an instinctive reaction.
Senior Brother could only provide her with some help, but Master had left her the position of Demon Lord.
Even a fool would know which was more important, Master or Senior Brother.
MO Ruyues heart was as clear as a mirror.
She should be the most clear-headed in this matter.
Is that so?
Ming Sihan got the answer he wanted, and the displeasure in his heart lessened a lot.
Of course.
Then I want to eat three sunny side up eggs.
Ming Sihan snorted and looked proud.
He was the most important person in Ruyues heart.
How could those menpare to him?
Alright, alright, alright. Let alone three, even thirty is fine as long as Master can eat it.
Mo Ruyue happily agreed.
Anyway, these things belonged to Ming Sihan.
Not long after, the noodles were ready, and there were also vegetables added to them.
Second Senior Brother doesnt like spicy food. Fourth Senior Brother only likes a little spicy food. Eldest Senior Brother doesnt like too salty food. Third Senior Brother likes salty food. Senior Brother Jun Lin also likes spicy food
MO Ruyue marked each bowl as if she was memorizing a menu.
This scene made Ming Sihan jealous again.
You have a good memory, he said sarcastically.You actually remember their tastes.
MO Ruyue did not notice the sarcasm in Ming Sihans words.
Then, she asked her subordinates to deliver the noodles to her senior brothers. She would not personally deliver them.
It was quite tiring to run around.
Master, these are yours. Three poached eggs.
MO Ruyue brought a bowl of noodles to Ming Sihan. Ming Sihan snorted and said, Dont you know what I like?
Doesnt Master like light dishes?
She was slightly stunned. She remembered that Ming Sihans taste was rtively nd.
l dont like nd dishes.
He did it on purpose to let Ruyue remember other peoples tastes.
It was enough to just remember him. There was no need to remember others.
Then Ill add chili and salt for Master?
Yes.
Ming Sihan responded.
MO Ruyue didnt think too much about it and added chili and salt into Ming Sihans bowl.
She was still wondering when her masters taste had be so heavy.
He actually likes to eat chili?
Since it was her masters request, she would naturally satisfy him.
Master, eat. Dont wait too long. The noodles wont taste good if theyre clumped.
MO Ruyue picked up her bowl and started eating.
MO Ruyue felt as if she had been revived after eating the food she had made in the Devil Realm.
Ming Sihan ate the noodles slowly and elegantly.
However, he soon felt ufortable. It was so spicy!
It was so spicy that his mouth went numb.
Why is it so spicy?
Do you have water? Master is thirsty.
Ming Sihans face turned red from the spiciness, but he pretended to be calm.
MO Ruyue poured tea for Ming Sihan. She looked at Ming Sihans fair skin, which was red like peach.
She chuckled and said,Master, do you feel that its very spicy? Let me tell you, I think this chili is the spiciest.
Didnt Master like spicy food? She must let her master eat to his hearts content.
No, its not spicy at all.
Ming Sihan shook his head. No matter how spicy the chili was, he had to finish it.
He took a deep breath. The bowl was red.
It was dyed red by the chili oil..
Chapter 817 - 817: Still Not Dead?
Chapter 817 - 817: Still Not Dead?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Master, if its too spicy, dont force yourself.
MO Ruyue saw that Ming Sihan was sweating and couldnt help but worry.
This sweat was a little abnormal.
Its just a little spicy. Im fine.
Why would he lower his head because of chili?
Beads of sweat appeared on Ming Sihans forehead, and his face turned red.
MO Ruyue quickly snatched Ming Sihans noodles.
This man really cared about his face.
She clearly couldnt eat spicy food, but she was still stuffed.
He was almost turned into a fool by the spiciness.
What are you doing?
Ming Sihan frowned when he saw his bowl being snatched away by MO Ruyue.
l like spicy food. You can eat mine.
MO Ruyue handed her bowl of non-spicy food to Ming Sihan.
Although she didnt particrly like spicy food, she could still eat a little.
That bowl
He had already eaten half of it.
He looked down at Ruyues bowl and took a bite of the poached egg.
This
MO Ruyue was afraid that Ming Sihan would snatch it back for her face, so she lowered her head and started eating.
She didnt give Ming Sihan a chance to snatch it away.
When the man saw this scene, his mind was not on the issue of snatching the noodles, but on the fact that Ruyue had eaten the noodles that he had eaten before.
He didnt seem to mind at all.
Of course, he did not think that Ruyue would mind.
He was a demon lord, and it was an honor to eat his noodles.
And he did not hate Ruyue eating the noodles in his bowl.
He actually felt perverted and happy.
He seemed to be getting weirder and weirder.
Isnt it spicy?
Its alright.
MO Ruyue sniffed and felt that her snot was about toe out from the spiciness.
Even she, who ate chili, couldnt stand it, so how could Ming Sihan, who didnt eat chili, stand it?
It was all because of face.
Master, why arent you eating noodles?
MO Ruyue raised her head and nced at the noodles in front of Ming Sihan.
This guy actually didnt move.
Suddenly, she seemed to have thought of something and hurriedly said,Master, Ill make you another bowl. Theres still some left in the pot.
She had almost forgotten that this man was a bit of a clean freak. How could he eat noodles that she had eaten before?
She had been careless.
Ming Sihan held her hand and pulled it away.This venerable self has never cared about trifles.
After saying that, he picked up the poached egg that MO Ruyue had taken a bite of and started eating.
He seemed to be eating with relish and was very intoxicated.
MO Ruyue watched Ming Sihan eat the poached egg that she had taken a bite of.
He didnt look down on her at all.
In her impression, this man probably wouldnt eat something that others had eaten before.
Xuanling immortal sect
Lan Qi had been grounded for a long time. When he came out, everything had changed.
Now, everything in Xuanling Immortal Sect had been handed over to Ji Xianfeng. Moreover, Ji Xianfeng had done everything in an orderly manner and obtained his masters favor.
Eldest Senior Brother.
Ji Xianfeng greeted Lan Qi politely when he saw him.
Lan Qi looked at Ji Xianfeng coldly and mocked,Are you proud now? He finally got what he wanted and took everything away from me.
Eldest Senior Brother?
Ji Xianfeng frowned slightly. Of course, he could not agree with these words.
Lan Qi snorted softly. Continue pretending. It turns out that youre the one whos the best at pretending in Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Youve been coveting my power for a long time, and now youve taken it all away. Are you happy now?
Ji Xianfengs expression darkened when he heard Lan Qis groundless ims.
He had never thought that his eldest senior brother would actually treat him coldly because of these things.
Where was the understanding and considerate Eldest Senior Brother?
Or was the understanding and consideration of others in the past just a superficial phenomenon?
Now, my right to manage Xuanling Immortal Sects matters is also given to me by Master. If youre dissatisfied, you can tell Master. Theres no need to mock me here.
When he heard Lan Qis words, he was naturally very unhappy.
Those who didnt know better would think that he was very scheming.
It was clearly Eldest Senior Brother who was incapable. He had done so many stupid things, but now he still felt that he was behind it.
Hehehe
Lan Qiughed as he pped.
Tsk, tsk, tsk, your acting is really good. It seems that everyone has been deceived by you.
You have the guts to do it, but you dont have the guts to admit it. What kind of man are you?
Hearing Lan Qis words, Ji Xianfeng did not know what to say.
Think whatever you want.
After saying that, Ji Xianfeng left.
If she had known earlier, she would not have greeted Lan Qi.
Why are you leaving? Ive exposed you. Do you feel embarrassed?
Ji Xianfeng, your hypocritical side will be known by everyone sooner orter.
Lan Qi shouted at Ji Xianfengs back.
Lets see how he will take revenge on Ji Xianfeng.
Those who offended him would not have a good ending.
Lan Qis expression turned vicious.
There was still one person who could not be let off in this situation.
It was MO Ruyue.
This woman had exposed her identity as a spy. She would definitely be killed by the demon world.
He deserved to die.
If it wasnt for MO Ruyues betrayal, how would he end up like this?
Did she think that she would be able to live a good life just because she betrayed Xuanling Immortal Sect?
He would definitely not be able to live in the Demon Realm. Lan Qi immediately went to find out more about MO Ruyue.
Third Junior Brother.
Lan Qi looked at Zhao Xin who was walking towards him and called out in a low voice.
Zhao Xin nodded slightly and looked at Lan Qi.
Eldest Senior Brother.
Looking at Lan Qi, Zhao Xin thought that Eldest Senior Brothers grounded days had not expired yet.
As for whether it was due or not, he did not calcte it carefully.
These things were not too important to him, so he could not be bothered.
Moreover, the person in front of him was the eldest senior brother.
It was best not to offend him if possible. After all, Eldest Senior Brother was a petty person.
Everyone in Xuanling Immortal Sect was well aware of this.
Junior Brother, how is MO Ruyue now? Lan Qi asked.
There was a hint of anticipation in his eyes.
It would be best if he heard about MO Ruyues death. That way, he would be very happy.
Zhao Xin didnt know why Eldest Brother was so concerned about MO Ruyue.
However, she still replied honestly, Junior Sister Ruyue is still in the Demon
Realm.
Still not dead?
Lan Qis expression immediately turned serious.
He should be imprisoned and tortured by the Demon Realm, right?
For traitors, dying too easily was not the style of the Demon Realm.
Thinking of how MO Ruyue was tortured to death by the people of the Devil Realm, he felt even more delighted.
Zhao Xin frowned slightly. Why did he feel that Eldest Senior Brother really wanted Junior Sister Ruyue to die?
Wasnt this guy a little too crazy?
Of course not. The Demon Realm only removed Junior Sister Ruyues position as the Saintess. Now, Junior Sister Ruyue is the only disciple of the Demon Lord.
When he heard the news, he was a little surprised.
However, it was still good news. At least Junior Sister Ruyue was not executed.
What
Lan Qi was stunned when he heard these words.
He couldnt ept this fact.
The hands by his side clenched into fists.
That woman was still alive!
Eldest Senior Brother, why do you look so upset when you heard that Junior Sister Ruyue is still alive?
Xin Zhao asked straightforwardly.
Could it be
Thinking of this possibility, Zhao Xins thoughts becameplicated.
Ming Sihan, dont you feel betrayed? Lan Qi did not answer the question. Who knows? Junior Sister Ruyue was indeed much more outstanding now. Not only was she powerful, but she had also be prettier. She was no longer the ugly Junior Sister Ruyue.
In the past, MO Ruyue was not only weak but also ugly.
He always wore a mask.
Zhao Xin recalled the past. Although he had never deliberately targeted MO Ruyue, he had never cared about her at all.
As for now, MO Ruyue had be stronger and prettier. Naturally, he began to pay attention to her.
Humans were all this realistic, regardless of whether they were righteous or evil.
It was just human nature.
Just like the fruits on the flowering trees, everyone would pick the good ones. As for the bad or damaged ones, they would be despised.
This was a very realistic question.
Everyone made the same choice.
He asked himself if he chose the good ones when he saw them. Therefore, Zhao Xin felt that there was nothing wrong with him..
Chapter 818 - 818: Stab a Brother for a Woman
Chapter 818 - 818: Stab a Brother for a Woman
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
But MO Ruyue is a traitor after all. Why isnt she executed? Lan Qi could not ept it.
Zhao Xin nced at Lan Qi, who seemed to be in a daze.
Did his brain get damaged during this period of being grounded?
Isnt it better that Junior Sister Ruyue wasnt executed? Why did Eldest Senior
Brother want Junior Sister Ruyue to die?
What good is it for you, Eldest Senior Brother?
Xin Zhao didnt understand.
Why would this man have such thoughts?
Now that Junior Sister Ruyue had be prettier and stronger, he should bring her back.
Why would he wish for Junior Sister Ruyue to die?
That wasnt a normal persons way of thinking, right?
Hmph, shes just a traitor of the immortal sect. She should have died to apologize!
Lan Qi snorted coldly.
Eldest Senior Brother, its best if Master doesnt hear what youre saying.
Xin Zhaos face darkened as he warned.
If his master heard this, this fellow would be grounded again. After all, Master cared a lot about Junior Sister Ruyue now.
So what if Master hears it? Do you think Ill be afraid?
Lan Qi said coldly.
Hearing Lan Qis words of not being afraid of death, Zhao Xin was instantly a little speechless.
This guys courage wasmendable.
Then say it in front of Master if you have the ability!
Zhao Xin said bluntly.
Why was she saying all this in front of him? He could not stop Lan Qi from doing anything.
He wanted to see if Lan Qi would be punished for saying this in front of his master.
Hearing Zhao Xins words, Lan Qi shut his mouth.
After all, he did not dare to say these things in front of his master.
He could onlyin in front of his junior brothers.
He did not dare to charge into the Demon Realm alone to kill people.
Seeing that Lan Qi did not speak, Zhao Xin turned around and left.
This guy was really too devilish.
seven stars Hall
Xin Zhao walked in and bowed respectfully to the meditating figure.
Master.
How did it go?
Junior Sister Ruyue is still in the Demon Realm. I cant contact her.
Xin Zhao said regretfully.
Perhaps Junior Sister Ruyue wasnt nning toe back.
Ling Shoumos long eyshes fluttered slightly, and he slowly opened his eyes. I understand. You may leave first.
Yes, Master.
With that, Zhao Xin stood up and left the Seven Stars Hall.
Actually, he felt that it would be fine if Junior Sister Ruyue was unwilling toe back.
Anyway, they were the ones who abandoned Junior Sister Ruyue in the first ce. It was normal for Junior Sister Ruyue to be unwilling toe back now. There was nothing much to say.
Moreover, Ming Sihan was indeed good to Junior Sister Ruyue.
After learning of Junior Sister Ruyues identity, he didnt punish her. He only cut off her position as the Saintess.
It could be seen how much Ming Sihan valued Junior Sister Ruyue.
However, Master did not seem to have any intention of giving up on Junior Sister Ruyue.
People always dont cherish when theyre around.
It was only until she lost it and left that she knew how to regret it.
Ling Shoumos eyes were deep. It seemed that he had to make a trip to the Demon Realm personally.
Otherwise, that woman wouldnt be willing toe back.
demon world
MO Ruyue was Ming Sihans only disciple now, and that was her only identity.
She was learning new things every day.
The most important thing right now was to learn how to ride a flying sword. In the future, he would no longer need to ride a horse.
MO Ruyue was very willing to learn how to ride a flying sword.
After learning how to ride a flying sword, it was much more convenient to travel.
Keep your center of gravity steady. Dont always be absent-minded.
Ming Sihan looked at MO Ruyue in front of him with a sincere expression.
For him, flying on a sword was too easy. He could even fly on a sword with his eyes closed.
There was no difficulty at all.
However, to MO Ruyue, she was just a novice driver and did not dare to operate the car.
He was afraid that he would lose his bnce and fall from the sword, disfiguring himself with his face facing the ground.
Of course Im thinking about Master. MO Ruyue replied in a bad mood.
She said it casually, but Ming Sihan took it to heart.
Miss, miss me?
His face was slightly red.
Was his charm that great?
Ruyue started to miss him when she was riding her sword?
Ming Sihan coughed lightly and said with a serious expression,Although, you still cant be distracted.
Yes, I understand.
MO Ruyue replied.
The whole morning had passed, but MO Ruyue could only keep her sword ten centimeters off the ground.
However, she was exhausted.
At noon, MO Ruyue went back to rest.
Master, Ill go back and rest first. Ill make something delicious while Im at it.
Sword Kinesis Flight was not something that could be mastered in a day.
The senior brothers had practiced for so long, but they were still a little unstable and still couldnt fly on swords for long distances. Moreover, she had just started learning how to ride a flying sword.
It would definitely be even worse.
Im also a little hungry.
Ming Sihan didnt even think about lying. He wasnt hungry at all.
Without waiting for MO Ruyue to agree, Ming Sihan said,lt just so happens that Ill go with you.
Since he had already said that, it would not be good to reject him again.
Alright then. MO Ruyue could only agree.
Ming Sihan smiled.
At this moment, a figure appeared in their line of sight.
Miracle Doctor He Xi, why are you here?
MO Ruyue asked with a smile on her face, as if she was happy about something.
Have you finished practicing your swordsmanship?
Yes, I was just about to go back and rest.
MO Ruyue replied.
He Xi nodded. Then you should go back and rest. I have something to tell your master.
Hearing He Xis name, Ming Sihan frowned.
This guy had toe at this time.
It came at the wrong time.
Oh, then Master, you can talk to Miracle Doctor He Xi. Ill go back first.
You can go back first. Ill be there in a while.
Ming Sihan nodded.
He hoped that He Xi really had something important to tell him, and not some trivial things.
If that happened, he would be very unhappy.
If they were even more unhappy, they would do some very bad things.
Ming Sihan watched as MO Ruyues back disappeared into the distance, and his face instantly turned cold.
If you have something to say, say it quickly. If you have something important to say, say it. You better have something important to look for me. Otherwise
A pair of cold eyes stared at He Xi.
He Xi felt a chill run down his spine.
He Xi swallowed hard and said: Youre a person who forgets friendship at the sight of women?
Not only am I forsaken by lust, but I can also stab you twice for the person I like.
You I really misjudged you.
He Xi said with a pained expression.
Was he the Ming Sihan that he knew in the past?
In the past, he would stab his brother in the ribs, but now, he would stab his brother in the back for a woman!
Her heart hurt!
How heartbreaking!
Whats the matter? Hurry up and say it.
Ming Sihan asked. He didnt want to see He Xi acting.
He Xi collected his thoughts and asked,How far have you developed? Do you have a kiss? Is there such a thing? He made a sleeping gesture.
No, I havent. Ming Sihan said coldly.
What? Your development is a little too slow!
The corner of He Xis mouth twitched. How far had the two of them developed?
There was no kissing or sleeping.
Ming Sihan was really calm.
Things have to go in circles, right?
Arent you afraid that the cooked duck will fly away?
He Xi nced at Ming Sihan and felt that this guy was too slow.
This wasnt Ming Sihans usual style..
Chapter 819 - 819: Can You Beat Me?
Chapter 819 - 819: Can You Beat Me?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
There are some things that can be done quickly, but there are some things that can be done too quickly.
Especially since Ruyue did not even have that kind of feeling towards him.
What he wanted was never to force, but to go both ways.
Of course, he would never let Ruyue fall in love with another man!
There was no room for sand in his eyes!
I dont know how to persuade you. Theres a saying that goes, if theres a flower, you should fold it. Dont wait until theres no flower.
He Xi said earnestly.
Ming Sihan ced his hands behind his back, his gaze deep and profound. He wouldnt break a branch for nothing!
MO Ruyue returned to her original courtyard and saw Li Zeyan waiting outside eagerly.
When he saw MO Ruyue, he quickly stood up.
Sister!
Li Zeyan shouted excitedly.
MO Ruyue quickened her pace and walked up to Li Zeyan.
Why are you waiting here every day? If he had the time, why didnt he study hard?
Upon meeting, MO Ruyue gave him a stern lecture.
After all, Li Zeyan wasnt young anymore. He was already a teenager of sixteen or seventeen years old.
Even if he didnt get married and have children like the trend, he should have his own career now.
Instead of calling her sister all day!
This kind of behavior was simply useless.
Of course, Ruyue would not say these words to Li Zeyan, lest she hurt his feelings.
She would teach Li Zeyan well.
Since he had brought this guy back, he had to be responsible for this guy.
She had said that she would avenge Li Zeyan.
However, Li Zeyan said that he did not want to live in hatred, so he told her not to take revenge.
Since Li Zeyan had said so, MO Ruyue had nothing else to say.
Moreover, she really had no clues about the murderer.
Since there was no need to take revenge, there were fewer things to do.
Li Zeyan lowered his head in grievance.
With his current strength, did he still need to learn any cultivation?
At the very least, he did not care about anyone in this world.
You have to know that youre a big child. You cant idle around all day. You need to find something to do.
MO Ruyue said earnestly.
Teaching children was a very tiring thing.
If the education was not good, then there would be one more useless person in the world.
She didnt expect Li Zeyan to be a dragon among men, but at least he could take care of himself in the future.
As the saying goes, having more skills doesnt burden you. Its always good to learn more skills. But, I dont know what to do.
Li Zeyan said softly.
In the past, his favorite thing to do was to cause trouble.
Until he met his sister. From then on, he restrained his temper, but he did not cause any trouble.
Because her sister didnt like naughty children who caused trouble.
Then what do you like to do?
Mo Ruyue asked.
Children at this age were more confused about the future, so it was normal for
them not to know what to do.
However, it was best to set your goals early and work hard in the direction of your goals so that you wouldnt have to do nothing all day.
Li Zeyan raised his head and met MO Ruyues gaze.
His favorite thing was to stay by his sisters side, protect her, and not let her be in any danger.
Other than that, there didnt seem to be anything else he liked.
Li Zeyan secretly thought to himself that he definitely could not say these words out loud.
His sister did not remember the past. If he said it, it might cause her to misunderstand.
After thinking about it, he shook his head and havent thought of anything 1 like yet.
Theres no hurry. You can think about it slowly, but everyone has to learn cultivation. This is something you have to learn.
Mo Ruyue said seriously.
She just didnt want Li Zeyan to be a good-for-nothing.
Moreover, the conditions were so good now, so he should study hard.
In the past, his conditions were too poor and he did not have the chance to learn cultivation.
Now that he finally had a chance, shouldnt he cherish it even more?
Sister, Zeyan knows.
Okay, its good that you know.
After reprimanding her, MO Ruyue walked into the courtyard.
She looked at the vegetable garden and said,Go to the vegetable garden and get some chives and beans. If possible, pull out two radishes.
Okay, sister.
Li Zeyan replied and went to the vegetable garden to pick beans and carrots.
Other than waiting for his sister, this vegetable garden was the ce that he often visited.
The vegetable garden was getting bigger and bigger, and there were more and more things growing in it.
Seeing that his sister liked it, he was full of energy.
He wished he could dig up the entire demon world and nt vegetables. That way, his sister would definitely be so happy that she would fly.
Her sister was still the same sister. She had the same vegetable genes that could not be changed.
He used to like growing vegetables, and he still liked growing vegetables.
MO Ruyue was about to cook when a figure walked in.
She turned her head and saw that it was Shen Yunyan.
What was this woman doing here?
Whats the matter?
l have to say, MO Ruyue is really capable. Even though she lost her title as Saintess, shes still the Demon Lords disciple.
Shen Yunyan sounded jealous.
Why did she get all the benefits?
Mo Ruyue was merely a spy from Xuanling Immortal Sect. She was not executed and was even brought by the Demon Venerable!
You dont have to say anything about envy. I know youre envious. MO Ruyue smiled.
Envy? I only have hatred in my heart. What right do you have to be the Demon Lords disciple? Just because youre a spy?
Shen Yunyan sized up MO Ruyue.
This woman was nothing more than this!
MO Ruyue smiled and tilted her head.Maybe its because of my charm.
She was deliberately trying to anger Shen Yunyan.
Charm? Can youpare to me?
Of course. Otherwise, why wouldnt the Demon Lord let you be his disciple?
Why me?
As she spoke, MO Ruyue looked at the woman in front of her provocatively.
Shen Yunyan was furious.
She didnt expect MO Ruyue to be so sharp-tongued.
Im going to cook. Are you here to freeload? Then 1 have to tell you that Im not going to keep you here for dinner.
So, you should leave quickly.
MO Ruyue immediately ordered him to leave.
He did not want to have too much interaction with this woman.
At this moment, Ming Sihan arrived. He had an oppressive aura around him.
When he saw Shen Yunyan there, he was instantly displeased.
What are you doing here?
Ming Sihan asked coldly.
Shen Yunyan saw Ming Sihaning over and her shoulders trembled in fear.
Obviously, she didnt expect Ming Sihans sudden arrival.
This subordinate greets the Demon Venerable. This subordinate is only here to take a look.
Shen Yunyan knelt down and lowered her head.
She didnt dare to tell the truth.
He could only lie with his eyes open.
He was only here to find trouble and make MO Ruyue unhappy.
Really?
Ming Sihan obviously didnt believe what Shen Yunyan said.
Absolutely.
Shen Yunyan gritted her teeth.
She felt a chill run down her spine. The Demon Lords gaze must be very terrifying.
Master.
MO Ruyue shouted and hurried over.
With a smile on his face, he did not even look at Shen Yunyan who was kneeling on the ground. Yes, is what she said true?
Ming Sihan asked MO Ruyue.
He did not believe Shen Yunyans words.
Shen Yunyan, this woman, was full of orpiment..
Chapter 820 - 820: The Saintess ‘Position Was Abolished
Chapter 820 - 820: The Saintess Position Was Abolished
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue nced at Shen Yunyan and smiled. Master, what she said is true.
Hmm?
Really?
Had this woman changed?
However, she also said something else. She said, Master, why did you take me in as your disciple? Why did you punish me so lightly?
Oh, she also said that her charm is stronger than mine. Master didnt take a fancy to her and chose me.
MO Ruyues voice became softer towards the end.
Ming Sihan was surrounded by a cold aura.
Was this woman courting death?
MO Ruyue, dont talk nonsense. I never said those words. Shen Yunyan quickly retorted.
She was so angry that her face turned red. MO Ruyue had gone too far.
With someone backing him up, could he be so unscrupulous?
Shen Yunyan felt that MO Ruyue had snatched away everything that should have belonged to her.
You didnt say these words. Then, are my words what you want to express?
Mo Ruyue raised her eyebrows slightly.
Thats right, she was deliberately picking a fight.
Who asked this guy to find trouble first?
She had never offended anyone unless they offended her. Shen Yunyan jumped up and down. Who was to me?
You
Shen Yunyan was at a loss for words, because what she meant was exactly what MO Ruyue had said.
However, MO Ruyues words would easily cause others to dislike her.
If the meaning was the same, different statements would have different effects!
Master, you see, Im not lying. Mo Ruyue whispered.
Shen Yunyan, do you want to die?
Ming Sihan asked coldly.
Where did this woman get the confidence to think that he would choose her?
Demon Venerable, this subordinate, this subordinate is just a little unconvinced. MO Ruyue is clearly a spy from an immortal sect. Why didnt Demon Venerable punish her?
Are you blind? Wasnt her saintess position already gone? But, but shes now your disciple, Demon Lord.
Because shes worth it. She deserves it, but you dont!
Ming Sihan!s words were like knives stabbing into the heart.
Shen Yunyans heart ached as she listened to the demons defense of MO
Ruyue.
Why was everyone defending Mo Ruyue?
Demon Venerable, arent you afraid of being opposed and ridiculed by everyone in the Demon Realm by protecting her like this?
Shen Yunyan questioned loudly.
Ming Sihan lowered his eyes and said coldly, Who dares to object? Who dares tough?
This subordinate does not dare!
Shen Yunyan replied softly. How could she dare to go against the Demon Lord?
However, this matter could not convince her.
MO Ruyue was not worthy!
If you dont dare, then shut up. Otherwise, get out of the Demon Realm.
There was no warmth in Ming Sihans voice.
Yes.
Shen Yunyan bit her lip and could only reply in this manner.
Then, Shen Yunyan asked,When will the selection of the Saintess begin?
That was his only chance to get close to the Demon Lord and let him understand him better.
Only by letting the Demon Lord understand him better could he let the Demon Lord know how good he was.
The reason why the Demon Venerable was like this was because he did not understand him.
She felt that she still had a chance.
From today onwards, the Demon Realm will abolish the position of Saintess and no longer need Saintesses!
This woman could forget about bing a Saintess.
He didnt need any saintesses.
Demon Venerable
Shen Yunyan couldnt believe that the demon would directly abolish the position of the Saintess.
Although she was very angry, Shen Yunyan did not dare to raise her voice. She could only say in a low voice,This is a rule that has been passed down. How can it be abolished just like that?
l am a demon lord and have the right to remove any rules.
Rules were dead, but people were alive.
What was this woman thinking?
If you cant stay in the Demon Realm, then get out.
Ming Sihan shouted coldly.
This woman didnt seem to understand humannguage.
Shen Yunyan stood up slowly and stumbled out of MO Ruyues courtyard.
When Ming Sihan was reprimanding Shen Yunyan, MO Ruyue did not say a word.
Shen Yunyan must have given up on the position of Saintess. There would be no more Saintess in the future. Why arent you saying anything?
Ming Sihan looked up at MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue stared at Ming Sihan and pretended to be infatuated.Master is so handsome when he reprimands people.
So handsome?
Its just very nice.
Really?
Ming Sihan recalled how he reprimanded Shen Yunyan earlier.
He really did seem a little handsome!
You like it when I scold people?
Wasnt this womans preferences a little strange?
MO Ruyue chuckled. I like Master scolding others, but I dont like Master scolding me.
Outside, Shen Yunyan walked out angrily.
She clenched her fists tightly. She hated MO Ruyue to the core.
She pushed all the me onto MO Ruyue.
If it wasnt for MO Ruyue, he wouldnt have
Little Junior Sister, where did you go? You dont look too good?
Qi Shaoyu saw Shen Yunyan walking over and couldnt help but ask.
When Shen Yunyan saw Qi Shaoyu, tears welled up in her eyes.
She revealed a wronged expression.
Who bullied you?
Qi Shaoyu quickly asked, who bullied Shen Yunyan and made her cry?
Shen Yunyan looked at Qi Shaoyu and asked,Senior Brother, who is more beautiful, MO Ruyue or me?
There was something wrong with the demon lords eyes. He actually thought MO Ruyue was pretty.
She felt that she was the prettiest.
Why do you ask?
Qi Shaoyu didnt answer immediately and asked curiously. Senior Brother, tell me honestly, who is prettier, MO Ruyue or me? Shen Yunyan pulled Qi Shaoyus hand and acted coquettishly.
Qi Shaoyu calmly pulled his hand away and replied,You two are very beautiful.
What if you have to choose one of us?
Shen Yunyan did not give up.
Qi Shaoyu looked troubled, but he couldnt resist Shen Yunyans insistence.
He could only say,Of course you were prettier in the past.
What about now?
Junior Sister Ruyue is naturally prettier now!
Was there still a need to say?
Shen Yunyan froze in disbelief. You men are all blind!
This
Qi Shaoyu was speechless. Men were all visual creatures.
How could he be blind?
He looked at Shen Yunyan and shook his head. After all, she was a woman.
How could she understand the thoughts of men?
Using a womans thinking to think about a mans feelings was a big mistake.
Little Junior Sister, you wont be sad because of these things, right?
There was no need for that.
If it was good looking, it was good looking. If it was not good looking, it was not good looking.
If he had a good personality, he could make up for some of it, but not all of it.
Its not just about these things. The Demon Lord abolished the position of
Saintess because of MO Ruyue, so there wont be any Saintess left in the
Demon Realm.
Her appearance and the Saintess were the two things she cared about the most.
She had always wanted to be the Saintess and get close to the Demon Lord. She would never have the chance again.
The Demon Realm no longer had the position of Saintess. The position of Saintess had been abolished. This was something that no one had expected. Therefore, there will be no morepetition for saintesses.
Thats right. Why did the Demon Lord abolish the position of Saintess?
Sigh, maybe its because of Mo Ruyue. A spy like her actually became a Saintess.
The Demon Lord must not have trusted the Saintess anymore, so he abolished her position.
Everyone discussed this matter and maintained their own views.
Ming Sihan didnt exin further. The reason why he abolished the position of Saintess was because he didnt want to cause unnecessary trouble.
He only needed one woman by his side.
It wasnt like he didnt have subordinates..
Chapter 821 - 821: Haven’t You Seen A Beauty Before?
Chapter 821 - 821: Havent You Seen A Beauty Before?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue had been practicing sword kinesis flight for half a month. She could fly as high as the roof of a building, but she could stillst for an hour.
Her improvement was faster.
Master, look at me. I can fly even higher.
MO Ruyue stepped on Gui Nians body and shouted from above.
Look at how powerful she is!
Ming Sihan raised his head and looked at the figures flying in the sky with a smile in his eyes.
Ruyue was overjoyed.
As the saying went, one could see far if one stood high.
MO Ruyue saw Ming Sihan in the Demon Pce, and MO Chengfeng and He Xi outside.
She greeted MO Chengfeng and He Xi loudly.
Senior Brother MO, look at me!
Miracle Doctor He Xi, look at me!
MO Chengfeng was training a group of demonic subordinates when he heard the voice in the sky and raised his head.
A figure flew over his head.
You can all go back and practice on your own.
MO Chengfene dismissed the subordinates of the Devil Realm in front of him so that he could have time to watch Ruyue fly in the sky.
It seemed that Ruyue was getting more and more proficient in the sword kinesis flying technique.
In the past, he was not as skilled as he was now.
His improvement was still rtively fast.
He Xi was fishing in the pond with a green lotus leaf covering her head.
It looked like a green hat.
There was a piece of foxtail grass hanging from his mouth.
He was very rxed.
When he heard the voiceing from the sky, he took off the lotus leaf on his head and raised his head. He narrowed his eyes and watched a figure fly over.
Ruyue, youre amazing!
He Xi shouted at MO Ruyue.
It had only been a short while, yet Ruyue dared to fly around like this. She was much stronger than the other cultivators.
It was quite powerful.
You tter me.
MO Ruyue was extremely pleased with herself.
The sky cleared up and the rain stopped. She felt free again.
He had to show off.
Ming Sihan heard MO Ruyue calling out other peoples names and felt a little depressed.
Turn!
MO Ruyue originally wanted to do a difficult mid-flip, but she couldnt turn around after she flipped over, so she fell down.
Acting tough was a failure!
MO Chengfeng and Ming Sihan flew towards MO Ruyue as they watched her fall.
He Xi stretched out his hands, ready to catch him with his bare hands.
F * ckF * ck
MO Ruyue hurriedly used her cultivation base to stabilize herself.
After she steadied herself for a while, she was hugged tightly by a warm embrace.
When she looked at it, it was Ming Sihan who caught it. Their eyes met, and they seemed to only see each other.
Seeing this, He Xi heaved a sigh of relief.
It was alright, it was alright.
He returned to the chair by the pond and continued fishing.
He was going to catch a fish to make soup at night.
At that time, he would have to trouble MO Ruyue again.
MO Chengfeng watched as the demon caught Ru Yue and returned to the ground.
It was good that Ruyue was fine.
Ming Sihan naturally saw MO Chengfengs figure. Did this guy want to catch Ruyue just now?
His eyes turned cold as he carried Ruyue and flew to the Demon Pce.
Master, thank goodness 1 have you.
MO Ruyue heaved a sigh of relief and quickly got out of Ming Sihans arms.
There seemed to be a faint fragrance of winter plum blossoms in this mans arms. It was quite pleasant.
Seeing the woman struggle out of his arms, Ming Sihan frowned slightly.
Did she despise him that much?
She didnt want to stay in his arms for even a moment longer?
Where are you going?
Ming Sihan couldnt help but ask as he watched MO Ruyue run forward.
She despised him and wanted to escape?
Ming Sihan was a little unhappy.
MO Ruyue stopped in her tracks. Im going to look for the ghost thoughts. I dont know where they went.
You dont have to find it!
Ming Sihan said in a low voice. He stretched out his hand and called out, Ghost Thoughts.
The ghost seemed to be summoned and flew up from the ground towards Ming Sihan.
Soon, the ghost appeared in Ming Sihans hand.
MO Ruyue was stunned by this scene.
Whats wrong?
Ming Sihan couldnt help but ask when he saw that MO Ruyue didnt move.
Its simply too handsome. Master, I want to learn this!
MO Ruyues eyes sparkled. She had to learn such a cool move.
Ming Sihan felt a sense of aplishment when he saw the womans face full of admiration.
Its not easy to learn this. Yon have to reach the state of bing one with
the sword.
Ming Sihan continued, And it must be a sword with its own consciousness. Ordinary swords cant do this. Master, teach me!
MO Ruyue looked determined.
She had to have such a cool move.
As long as you follow me and learn well, you will learn.
Good!
Xuanling immortal sect
Ling Shoumo looked at the scene in the mirror with a solemn expression.
That woman seemed to be very happy with Ming Sihan.
Seeing this, Ling Shoumo clenched his fists tightly.
Suddenly, the scene in the mirror fell into darkness. He knew that his peeping was discovered.
At night, when MO Ruyue was sleeping soundly, something suddenly appeared beside her bed.
He opened his eyes abruptly and saw a white figure.
He instinctively wanted to shout, but he realized that he couldnt move or make a sound.
What was going on?
Ruyue, Im here to bring you back.
After Ling Shoumo finished speaking, he waved his sleeve and MO Ruyue closed her eyes again.
What happened next was unknown!
When she woke up, she realized that her surroundings had changed.
Everything became extremely unfamiliar, and there seemed to be a sense of familiarity in the unfamiliarity.
This seemed to be the ce of the Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Because she saw the symbol of Xuanling Immortal Sect, she was sure that this was Xuanling Immortal Sect.
He was clearly in the Demon World. Why did he wake up and appear in Xuanling Immortal Sect?
He recalled what had happened before.
Thats right!
She seemed to have seen Ling Shoumo.
She should have been brought here by that man, Ling Shoumo.
Other than Ling Shoumo, no one else could enter the Demon Realm without being discovered.
At the thought of this, MO Ruyue suddenly became very angry.
What was this scumbags motive?
MO Ruyue was furious.
After being captured and brought to Xuanling Immortal Sect, MO Ruyue naturally thought of ways to leave this ce.
Perhaps it was because she used to be here, but she had very bad memories, so she hated this ce very much and did not want to stay here at all!
She got up and walked out, only to find a man in white sitting outside. This man was naturally Ling Shoumo. MO Ruyue was very familiar with this man.
Master Xuan Ling, I wonder why you captured me? Could it be that he wants to use me as a bargaining chip to threaten the Demon Realm?
If thats the case, then I can only say that youve made the wrong calction. I wont be a bargaining chip for you to threaten the Demon Realm. MO Ruyue said coldly, her eyes filled with displeasure.
She had already be a brand new person. There was nothing bad about being in the Demon Realm.
At least, it was much better than when she was in Xuanling Immortal Secte Hearing MO Ruyues voice, Ling Shoumo slowly opened his eyes.
He sized up the woman in front of him and saw that the womans eyebrows were like a painting, her figure was graceful, and her eyes were bright.
He had never properly sized up this woman before. MO Ruyue felt her hair stand on end from the mans stare.
What are you looking at?
She looked at him unhappily.
Youve changed a lot.
After a long while, the man finally said this.
He stood up and walked towards MO Ruyue..
Chapter 822 - 822: Admit My Mistake
Chapter 822 - 822: Admit My Mistake
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue looked at the man walking over and pretended to be calm. If you have something to say, say it quickly. Dont waste my time.
She had to hurry back to the Demon Realm.
Have you forgotten that youre a disciple of Xuanling Immortal Sect?
Im sorry, Ive already betrayed you. Im already a disciple of the Demon World and Im also studying demonic cultivation.
MO Ruyue spoke bluntly. Since things had already turned out this way, there was no need for her to be hypocritical in front of Ling Shoumo.
She just didnt like Xuanling Immortal Sect.
If Xuanling Immortal Sect had given her many good memories, perhaps she would still miss them.
However, she did not have any good memories here.
Youre a disciple of Xuanling Immortal Sect. Once youre a disciple of Xuanling Immortal Sect, youll always be a disciple of Xuanling Immortal
Sect!
Whatever you say, its a fact that I betrayed you.
MO Ruyue was toozy to exin.
She turned her face to the side.
Why are you so willing to degenerate and give up on Xuanling Immortal Sect?
What the Devil Realm learns are just some evil ways.
You shouldnt humiliate yourself like this.
Ling Shoumos expression was grave.
MO Ruyue smiled faintly and took a step back. This man was too close to her, which made her very ufortable.
l can only say that we are on different paths.
Please let me go. Im from the Demon Realm.
After knowing the good things about the Demon Realm, how could he miss the bad things about the Xuanling Immortal Sect?
She was not masochistic.
l absolutely wont allow you to leave Xuanling Immortal Sect. Youll always be my disciple. Youre so stubborn now because youve been brainwashed by the Demon World.
Stay in Xuanling Immortal Sect. Xuanling Immortal Sect is your final destination.
Ling Shoumos voice carried a hint of anger.
Did this woman know who was really good to her?
Hearing Ling Shoumos words, MO Ruyue couldnt help butugh out loud.
Alright, you said that I was brainwashed, so I want to ask you something simple.
Go ahead.
Master Xuanling, how many disciples do you have under you?
Countless! Ling Shoumo thought for a moment. He didnt know how many disciples he had under him.
He had never been in charge of these things.
MO Ruyue knew that this man didnt know how many disciples she had, so her answer was within her expectations.
Master Xuanling, do you know how many disciples the Demon Lord has? Ling Shoumo fell silent.
The Demon Lord only has one disciple, and Im the only disciple of the Demon Lord, replied MO Ruyue.
In Xuanling Immortal Sect, you wouldnt even look at me, but in the Demon World, Im the only disciple of the Demon Lord. Everyone knows what to choose.
He would rather be the head of a chicken than the tail of a phoenix. Moreover, Xuanling Immortal Sects might not be a phoenix tail, but a chicken
Then why did she have to rush up to be a chicken tail and not choose the chicken head?
Master Demon Venerable gave me a lot of things, and every single one of them shocked everyone. What did I get in Xuanling Immortal Sect?
You want the horse to run, but you dont want the horse to eat grass. How can it be so good?
Your Xuanling Immortal Sect gave too little.
MO Ruyue was extremely disgusted with Xuanling Immortal Sect.
In this ce, there was only eternal oppression.
Although the Demon Realm was not perfect, it was definitely better than here.
MO Ruyue was sure of this.
Just because of this, youre unwilling to stay in Xuanling Immortal Sect and are willing to betray Xuanling Immortal Sect?
Ling Shoumo asked coldly.
He didnt expect this woman to be so realistic and profligate.
Mo Ruyue lowered her eyes and sat on the chair beside her casually.
There was no need to be too reserved here. In the past, he was afraid of Ling Shoumo, so he was too reserved.
What was there to be afraid of now?
Back then, I wanted toe back. After all, I had done bad things in the
Demon Realm. I was uneasy and afraid that my identity would be discovered
l asked Xuanling Immortal Sect for help again and again, but all I got was a sentence telling me to wait a little longer. It was supposed to be three months, but in the end, it was almost three years. You have no idea how unustomed 1 was to the Demon World at the beginning.
l was looking forward to you letting me go back as soon as possible, but what I waited for was disappointment again and again.
When I have umted enough disappointment, there will be no hope. Moreover, my days in the Demon Realm are getting better and better. Perhaps all of this has something to do with my recovery of my appearance.
MO Ruyue felt a little sad at the end of her sentence, but there was nothing she could do.
Isnt that how people are?
She always liked to look at good-looking things and paid attention to good-looking things.
It was so bad that he didnt want to look at it at all.
l just want to ask, if I was still that faceless woman back then with ordinary talent, would you let mee back?
Will you notice me?
Mo Ruyue questioned as she raised her hand to caress her cheek.
He felt a little sad.
Ling Shoumo was silent for a while, but in the end, he nodded and said,Yes.
When you hesitated for a moment, I knew that this was not your true answer, but the answer you gave after convincing yourself. Perhaps, you were just trying to deceive me and yourself.
Mo Ruyues beautiful eyes seemed to have seen through everything.
She wasnt a fool. Would Ling Shoumo say he knew how to do it?
A hesitant answer. He didnt even believe that he would be able to do it.
Then, she stood up and took a deep breath. Lets part on good terms and not disturb each other.
l dont want to embarrass everyone.
MO Ruyue turned around and stared deeply at Ling Shoumo.
Her attitude was firm and she had said what she needed to say.
However, no matter what MO Ruyue said, Ling Shoumo refused to let her go.
She didnt know why this man was doing this.
So, no matter what I say, you wont let me go, right?
MO Ruyue walked to the door and wanted to go out, but she found a barrier.
A transparent barrier.
Mo Ruyue looked at the barrier helplessly.
It seemed like this man was prepared.
Youre supposed to be a disciple of the Xuanling Immortal Sect. Ling Shoumo was still stubborn.
There was no way he would let MO Ruyue return to the Devil Realm.
It used to be
Mo Ruyue turned around and said with a cold gaze, Even if I dont go to the
Devil World, I dont want to stay in your Xuanling Immortal Sect. I think
Tomato Immortal Sect is better than your Xuanling Immortal Sect.
She had a deep impression of the Tomato Immortal Sect. Almost all of them were women.
It suited her.
Dont be stubborn. Think about it in the Seven Stars Hall. Ling Shoumo listened to MO Ruyues words with mixed feelings.
He hoped that MO Ruyue would think it through.
After saying that, Ling Shoumo walked out.
MO Ruyue shouted at Ling Shoumos back angrily,Are you sick?
However, Ling Shoumo acted as if he hadnt heard anything. He didnt stop walking at all.
Im sorry!
Im sorry!
Im sorry!
MO Ruyue shouted three times, calling for the heavenly punishment to strike this man to death!
Ling Shoumo, who was outside, stopped in his tracks, thinking that MO Ruyue had mistaken him for someone else.
Wouldnt it have been better if he had admitted his mistake earlier?
His dark eyes shed as he turned around.
Just as he was about to walk back, a bolt of lightning suddenly struck down.
Ling Shoumo raised his hand to block it. The sudden lightning made him feel a little at a loss.
Sparks flew everywhere, but Ling Shoumo was not knocked out. His body was surrounded by a white protective shield.
Therefore, the heavenly punishment did not have much effect on him..
Chapter 823 - 823: Detained
Chapter 823 - 823: Detained
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Then, the second and third lightning bolts struck down, but they still did not knock the man out.
It only caused a slight crack to appear on the mans protective shield, but it was quickly repaired.
Its actually useless!
MO Ruyue was stunned. Her heavenly punishment was useless against this man!
She was stunned and her expression was solemn.
Was it because Ling Shoumos cultivation was too high?
Perhaps that was really the case. Otherwise, how could such a situation ur?
You apologized?
You heard wrong!
MO Ruyue snorted and rolled her eyes at Ling Shoumo.
He continued, l didnt do anything wrong. Why should I apologize? It was my choice to join the Demon World. You have no right to interfere with my choice.
He was not her father or mother, so why did he care so much?
Even his biological parents couldnt do anything about it.
Ling Shoumos face darkened when he saw MO Ruyues expression change again.
Then you can think about it here.
After saying that, Ling Shoumo left again.
Crazy.
MO Ruyue cursed.
Even the heavenly punishment couldnt deal with Ling Shoumo. She really had no other choice.
Even if she used a brick, she probably wouldnt be able to touch the corner of that mans clothes.
When MO Ruyue was locked up in the Seven Stars Hall, she would smash jars whenever she was unhappy. She would smash everything in the room.
Who asked Ling Shoumo to lock her up in the Seven Stars Hall?
He wanted to set fire to the Seven Stars Hall, but he was also inside. It would be very ufortable if his hair was burned.
Not long after, a familiar figure came over to deliver food.
This
Looking at the mess in the room, Ji Xianfeng revealed a shocked expression.
What happened here?
Junior Sister Ruyue, eat something.
MO Ruyue ignored Ji Xianfeng. She was not familiar with Ji Xianfeng before.
They had nevermunicated.
Is this all your work?
Ji Xianfeng didnt know where to put his feet. The room was a mess.
He carefully ced the food on the table.
Let me out. If you dont let me out, Ill burn this ce down.
MO Ruyue threatened.
Were these people illegally imprisoning people?
Ji Xianfeng listened to the womans voice and said,Junior Sister, Senior Brother will give you a piece of advice. Its better for you to return to the immortal sect. The Demon Realm is not a ce you should stay.
If I want to stay there, I will stay there. I dont need others to make decisions for me.
Youll regret it sooner orter.
Regret is also my business!
MO Ruyue said coldly. Even if she regretted it, it had nothing to do with them.
He had ignored her back then, but now that he wanted to talk to her, she was not interested.
When she was here, she didnt know how to cherish it. Now that she was living well in the Demon Realm, these people came to get her back.
What did he take her for?
He was used to living a good life and really could not continue living a bad life in Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Hey, junior sister, you
Ji Xianfeng wanted to say something, but he didnt say it in the end.
Even if he said it, Junior Sister might not listen.
He could only leave.
Other than his master and himself, no one could enter here.
The reason why he could enter was also because of his masters permission. If his master did not allow it, he would not be able to enter either.
MO Ruyue had no appetite at all. She just wanted to leave this damned ce.
It was Xuanling Immortal Sect who abandoned her first.
If she wanted to keep her here, she would not stay here unless she was crazy.
She picked up the food on the table and threw it at the door.
It only hit the barrier and fell down.
Very well, detain me. I will make you regret it.
MO Ruyue said as she took out the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
He shed his sword at the pir supporting the Seven Stars Hall. He shed left and right, and cracks instantly appeared on the pir.
She wasnt an ordinary woman who couldnt even catch a chicken.
There were four pirs in total, and they were all cut in half by MO Ruyue.
Seeing that the Seven Stars Hall did not show any signs of copse, MO Ruyue could not help but sigh at the firmness of the Seven Stars Hall.
Hence, she leaped up and flew onto the roof beam.
It destroyed the structure of the beams.
Now, the Seven Star Shop was finally on the verge of copse.
The roof copsed instantly.
With a loud bang, the room instantly copsed, raising dust all over the ground.
MO Ruyue could only cover her mouth and nose to prevent herself from inhaling too much dust.
All the immortal sect disciples were dumbfounded when they saw the Seven Stars Hall copse in an instant. Why did the Seven Stars Hall copse?
What happened?
l dont know. That ce seems to be the Seven Stars Hall.
The Seven Stars Hall has copsed! Why would the Seven Stars Hall copse?
Everyone looked puzzled.
Xin Zhao was stunned for a few seconds as he watched from afar. When he came back to his senses, he quickly went to the Seven Stars Hall to check.
Many people rushed over to the Seven Stars Hall.
Ji Xianfeng cried out in his heart and quickly turned back to take a look.
This MO Ruyue was too crazy. She had actually caused the Seven Stars Hall to copse.
How did he do it?
The Seven Stars Pce was not an ordinary pce. This woman was a little too valiant.
But when they arrived, the dust had already gradually dispersed.
The dust wasnt too thick and the ce was too clean.
They saw MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue wore a ck dress and held the Heaven-cleaving Sword in her hand. She exuded a cold and sharp aura.
Her long ck hair was tied up into a simple bun. As the breeze blew, her hair danced in the wind.
Her skin was as white as snow, her facial features were exquisite, and her eyes were cold.
She stood on a pile of ruins and looked at everyone coldly.
He thought that he could leave by copsing the house. He did not expect there to be a barrier above.
She waspletely surrounded by the barrier.
MO Ruyue gripped the hilt of her sword tightly. She was naturally angry.
Who would want to be detained?
This ce
Zhao Xin was speechless. He stared straight at MO Ruyue who was standing on the ruins.
The woman stood against the wind, her entire body exuding a murderous aura.
No one dared to get close.
Ji Xianfeng walked over and said in disbelief,Did you do this?
Is there anyone else here besides me? MO Ruyue was not afraid at all.
This was the consequence of detaining her.
Youre too much.
l went overboard? MO Ruyue was amused. Isnt it too much to lock me up here? she continued.
Ji Xianfeng opened his mouth, but the MO Ruyue in front of him was still a stranger.
It was as unfamiliar as before.
Locking you up here is for your own good!
This is for you. Do you want it?
MO Ruyue asked.
For her own good?
Using her good temperament to detain her?
What a joke!
Everyone looked at MO Ruyue. This woman was clearly only at the Foundation Establishment realm, but she seemed to be more powerful than them.
Destroying the Seven Stars Hall by himself, it was not so easy for ordinary people to do it.
demon world
Ming Sihan brought MO Ruyue over, but MO Ruyue was nowhere to be seen.
Did this girl forget that she still has to learn summoning today?
Usually, MO Ruyue would arrive early and punctually.
After a while, he heard footsteps outside. Ming Sihan sat up straight and immediately put on a mysterious expression.
Finally He was here.
He paused before he could finish his sentence.
What he saw was not MO Ruyue, but Li Zeyan and a little thing beside her.
It should be Ruyues pet, the mountain ghost..
Chapter 824 - 824: Escaping the Demon Realm Again
Chapter 824 - 824: Escaping the Demon Realm Again
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Why are you here?
Ming Sihan leaned backzily and asked casually.
He did not want to see them but Ruyue.
What should havee didnte, and what shouldnt have came.
My sister is missing.
Li Zeyan said anxiously.
Yesterday, he had secretly gone to the canteen with Hillghost to drink some wine, so he slept too soundly at night.
He did not know what had happened.
Most of the time, he would wake his sister up when she woke up.
Although he was drunk yesterday, he still woke up on time to wake his sister up.
However, she realized that her sister was not in the room.
He didnt see his sister when he came to the Demon Pce.
His sister had disappeared.
What?
Ming Sihans expression instantly turned serious.
Ruyue had disappeared?
l didnt see my sister when I woke up this morning. My sister isnt in the
Demon Pce either. My sister is missing
Its all my fault
Li Zeyan began to me himself.
If he had known earlier, he wouldnt have drunk so much yesterday. Otherwise, how could he not know where his sister went?
Hillghost also lowered his head in self-reproach.
It was all their fault.
When Ming Sihan heard that MO Ruyue had gone missing, he couldnt sit still.
He got up and walked out.
Li Zeyan and Hillghost followed the man in front of them.
Perhaps this man could find his sister.
Ming Sihan was a little annoyed.
Li Zeyan, youre really useless. Youre a demonic beast after all, but you cant even keep an eye on Ruyue?
He could not help but reprimand in a low voice.
He Xi saw Ming Sihans energetic appearance and ced his hands behind his back, leisurely like an old man.
He had nothing to do all day long, wandering around. Morning. Arent you going to teach Ruyue swordsmanship today?
He Xi greeted him with a gentle smile on his face.
His smile was usually very infectious.
However, at this moment, Ming Sihan wanted to punch him when he saw his smile.
Ruyue was gone, yet this fellow still had a smile on his face. Who was he trying to annoy?
Are you happy?
Uh, its okay?
Hearing Ming Sihans strange tone, He Xi seemed to feel the mans anger.
He quickly wiped away the smile on his face.
Then, he put on a solemn expression and said, What happened?
What made Ming Sihan so unhappy?
It must be something very important.
Seeing the smile on He Xis face, Ming Sihans anger subsided a little.
Ruyue has disappeared.
Disappeared? Did this girl escape again?
He Xis first reaction was that MO Ruyue had run away alone.
Just likest time, he left the Demon Realm without a sound. At this moment, Li Zeyan immediately retorted,Impossible!
Why not?
It was normal for Ruyue to do such a thing.
If sister leaves the demon world, she will definitely bring me along. Squeak, squeak, squeak Hillghost was not willing to be outdone.
Li Zeyan looked at Hillghost, feeling sad.
It was impossible for her sister to leave alone.
He must have encountered some danger.
Seeing this, He Xi looked at Ming Sihan and said, Lets calm down first. Send someone to search the Demon Realm and see if Ruyue has gone elsewhere.
As the saying goes, concern makes one confused. It was better to confirm if Ruyue had really gone missing first.
If she really went missing, they would first investigate the suspect.
He was wondering why Ming Sihan was so angry so early in the morning. It turned out that it was because of MO Ruyues disappearance.
It seemed that MO Ruyues position in Ming Sihans heart was bing more and more important.
In fact, he was very curious about how this man fell in love with MO Ruyue.
One had to know that this man did not understand romance, women, and enlightenment.
Suddenly, one day, he was moved by a woman.
Then lets do as you say.
Ming Sihan nodded, but his brows were still tightly furrowed.
He hoped that Ruyue wouldnt run around.
With Ruyues current cultivation base, it was enough to protect him. He was not afraid that Ruyue would encounter any danger. He was just afraid that the woman would deliberately escape from him.
Alright, then Ill go and do it now. With that, He Xi left in a hurry.
Li Zeyan looked at He Xis back as she left and said,Ill go find my sister too.
Go ahead.
Ming Sihan didnt stop him, so he had more power.
Everyones goal was the same-they all wanted to find Ruyue.
Ming Sihan didnt go out to search. Instead, he used the illusion to check on the situation at Xuanling Immortal Sect.
When Ruyue went missing, the first person he thought of was Ling Shoumo.
Ming Sihan summoned an illusion, but strangely, the environment was dark.
Obviously, he could not see everything about Xuanling Immortal Sect through the illusion.
This Ling Shoumo must have a guilty conscience. Otherwise, why would he stop the interview with the illusion?
He was almost certain that Ruyue was in Xuanling Immortal Sect.
It was impossible for those people from Xuanling Immortal Sect toe here, except for Ling Shoumo.
This man, who had always been self-proimed to be open and aboveboard, had actually started to steal.
However, what he stole was not a chicken or a dog, but a human.
Stealing people to the Demon Realm, this guy was a little too bold.
She had stolen someone right under his nose!
Ming Sihan didnt think too much about it and directly headed towards Xuanling Immortal Sect.
He was going to bring Ruyue back.
What? Ruyue is missing?
MO Chengfeng was shocked. He felt that Ruyue would not leave the Demon Realm for no reason.
Even if he wanted to leave the Demon Realm, he would leave behind some kind of letter.
Baili Xi and Jing Xichen arrived at MO Chengfengs ce at the same time.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin also came over.
Senior Brother MO, are we going out to look for Ruyue?
Jing Xichen asked with a solemn expression.
They already knew about Ruyues disappearance.
Where would Ruyue go?
Baili Xi frowned. Ruyue couldnt have escaped from the demon world again, right?
This possibility was very small.
Ruyue couldnt have been kidnapped, right?
Ye Junlin said thoughtfully.
Ruyue isnt that weak, Ye Yunfeng said.Ordinary people cant kidnap Ruyue without a sound.
Moreover, this was the Demon Realm.
The people who kidnapped Ruyue were either their own people or experts from the outside.
Qi Shaoyu and Xia Zhixing also walked over.
Ruyue is missing?
Qi Shaoyu asked.
Yes, we were just discussing where to look.
MO Chengfeng responded and looked up at Qi Shaoyu who was walking over.
He Xi, Li Zeyan, and Hillghost also came over.
Weve searched everywhere in the Demon Realm, but no one has seen
Ruyue.
Xuanling immortal sect
Mo Ruyue had destroyed the Seven Stars Hall, turning it into ruins.
Seeing that there was still a barrier outside, MO Ruyue found a clean ce and sat down on it.
There were originally many Mystical Spirit disciples who were watching, but they were eventually dispersed by Ji Xianfeng and Zhao Xin.
At the same time, he quickly sent someone to invite his master back.
When Lan Qi heard that MO Ruyue had returned, he hurried over to the Seven Stars Hall.
When he saw MO Ruyues expression, Lan Qi felt both angry and resentful.
How dare youe back?
Lan Qi mocked the moment he saw her.
Now, he finally knew that Xuanling Immortal Sect was still the best, so he came back?
Chapter 825 - 825: You Can’t Trap Me Forever!
Chapter 825 - 825: You Cant Trap Me Forever!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Only a fool would be willing to return here. Eldest Senior Brother, I heard that youre not doing well in Xuanling Immortal Sect. Why dont you join the
Demon World with me?
Mo Ruyue looked at Lan Qi and said calmly.
Then, he seemed to have thought of something and said,Oh, thats not right. The Demon Realm wont ept people like you because youre not only greedy but also stupid!
The Demon Realm cant afford to lose face like you. Only Xuanling Immortal Sect is willing to take you. Hearing Mo Ruyues mockery, Lan Qi punched the barrier.
He was exasperated.
This woman actually dared to mock him like this!
Whats wrong? Are you upset that I hit the nail on the head? MO Ruyue continued to taunt Lan Qi, deliberately provoking him.
This guy was very stupid to begin with.
He was also very greedy.
MO Ruyue, youre courting death!
Lan Qi was flustered and exasperated. He took out the sharp sword beside him and used it to block the barrier.
Come and hit me. You cant hit me.
MO Ruyue stuck out her tongue at Lan Qi and made a face at him.
He looked like he deserved a beating.
When Zhao Xin and Ji Xianfeng saw this, they quickly went forward to pull Lan Qi back.
Eldest Senior Brother, stop!
Ji Xianfeng stopped him.
Lan Qis temper was easily swayed. MO Ruyue s words could easily infuriate him.
He simply could not control his emotions.
Get lost! You took everything from me!
Youre still trying to stop me now. Do you really think that you have the power to control me?
Lan Qi asked with a sneer.
Ji Xianfeng is stronger than you, and his ability is better than yours. If youre not convinced, go find Ling Shoumo.
MO Ruyue said as she watched the show.
Junior Sister Ruyue, stop talking.
Xin Zhao couldnt stand it anymore.
This woman was trying to sow discord.
What I said is the truth. Ji Xianfeng is very strong. You have no choice but to admit it.
MO Ruyue stood up and walked to the boundary.
Her smile was like a flower, and her eyes were filled with light.
Senior Brother Lan Qi, youre really a stupid trash. You cant do anything. How can a person like you have the cheek to stay in Xuanling Immortal Sect all the time?
I heard that everything in Xuanling Immortal Sect has been handed over to Ji Xianfeng. You cant be any more impressive, right?
If this Xuanling Immortal Sect is ruined by you for another two years, it will probably be disbanded.
Lan Qis expression became worse and worse. He waspletely angered by the woman in the array.
Eldest Senior Brother, dont listen to Junior Sister Ruyue.
Ji Xianfeng stopped Lan Qi.
Although MO Ruyue was praising him, he clearly understood that she was trying to anger Lan Qi.
Lan Qi had always been hostile to him because of these things.
Now that MO Ruyue had said it out loud, it would be strange if Lan Qi could remain calm.
Shes right. You stole everything from me.
There was only anger in Lan Qis eyes as he gradually lost his rationality.
He had lost his mind.
Then, Lan Qi shed his sword at Ji Xianfeng.
Ji Xianfeng narrowly dodged.
Eldest Senior Brother, calm down.
Calm down for what? Ji Xianfeng, you took everything from me.
Lan Qi had long lost his rationality in anger.
He just wanted to kill Ji Xianfeng and take back what originally belonged to him.
Ji Xianfeng wasnt a pushover either. He calmly faced Lan Qis attack.
He dodged left and right and did not sh head-on with Lan Qiqi.
Xuanling Immortal Sect had a rule that disciples were not allowed to fight casually.
Are you satisfied with this result?
Zhao Xin looked at MO Ruyue with a grave expression.
This MO Ruyue felt unfamiliar.
Why did she do that?
If Im not satisfied, thats it. How can I be satisfied?
Then what do you want?
Let me out.
She felt like she was in jail here, which made her very unhappy.
That damned Ling Shoumo, who knows where he went, and he still hasnt returned!
Did this guy not know that his Seven Stars Hall had been destroyed by her?
Only then can Master let you out.
Then hurry up and find your master!
He is also your master.
No, I dont have a master. I only have one master. My master is the Demon Lord of the Demon World!
MO Ruyue said firmly.
As he spoke, a white figure finally flew back.
Ling Shoumo looked at the destroyed Seven Stars Pce and was only slightly stunned before he returned to normal.
Ling Shoumo, youre finally back. Hurry up and let me out. Mo Ruyue hurriedly called out to Ling Shoumo when she saw him.
His expression was extremely bad.
Master!
Zhao Xin called out in a low voice. His master had finally returned.
The Seven Stars Hall had already been destroyed by MO Ruyue.
On the other side, Lan Qi and Ji Xianfeng also noticed Ling Shoumos return.
Lan Qi was the first to arrive in front of Ling Shoumo. He called out respectfully, Master! Ji Xianfeng followed closely behind. Master.
What are you two doing?
If he wasnt mistaken, the two of them seemed to be fighting.
Ling Shoumos face darkened.
Lan Qi stammered.
Ji Xianfeng responded silently.
The two of you can go down and receive your punishment.
Yes.
Yes.
Ji Xianfeng and Lan Qi left.
She was as obedient as a littlemb.
Master, Ill go down first. Zhao Xin hurriedly said when he saw this. After saying that, Zhao Xin hurriedly left.
MO Ruyue looked at the handsome and cold man outside. He had a slender figure, fair skin, and a handsome face.
This man used to be the man that MO Ruyue liked.
However, this man seemed to have no emotions by nature. He was always expressionless.
She looked as if she was high and mighty.
MO Ruyue hated this man. Ling Shoumo, quickly let me out.
She red at Ling Shoumo.
What was the point of locking her up here?
Bastard!
MO Ruyue cursed Ling Shoumo in her heart.
What happened here?
Ling Shoumo asked calmly.
His cold eyes were filled with gloom.
Cant you tell? I destroyed this ce.
Mo Ruyue shrugged her shoulders and a cold smile appeared on her face.
He turned around and nced at the mess on the ground.
At least she was proud of her masterpiece.
This ce should be smashed into pieces.
Master only went out for a while, and you destroyed this ce?
MO Ruyue nodded. She didnt feel that she had done anything wffong.
This man must be heartbroken.
Xuanling Immortal Sects most luxurious and imposing Seven Stars Hall had been destroyed in her hands.
However, she could not find a trace of heartache on this mans face.
Ling Shoumo, let me out!
You can trap me for a while, but you cant trap me forever!
Ling Shoumo stared at MO Ruyue who was inside the barrier and said,As long as you turn over a new leaf, I can let you out.
He nodded slightly, as if there was no room for negotiation.
Dream on!
Also, the Demon Realm is not an evil path!
MO Ruyue spat.
Since thats the case, then you should stay here well. When you agree, Ill let you out.
Ling Shoumo turned around and was about to leave..
Chapter 826 - 826: Let the Master Serve the Disciple
Chapter 826 - 826: Let the Master Serve the Disciple
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
At this moment, a man with silver-white hair and a golden-ck robe descended from the sky!
The mans aura was strong, and his handsome and impable face was cold.
His dark red eyes were particrly eye-catching.
What a good master of the righteous path of light, but youre sneaking into the Demon Realm at night to steal people?
Ming Sihans aura was fully released, and his voice was filled with the aura of a king.
He stared at Ling Shoumo coldly.
Master!
When MO Ruyue saw Ming Sihan, it was as if she saw the light of dawn.
His masters figure was still so handsome, so handsome that people could not take their eyes off him.
She knew that she was about to be saved.
Good disciple, Im here to save you.
Ming Sihans gaze fell on MO Ruyue, and his fierce gaze instantly turned gentle.
He nced at the ruins under Ruyues feet with satisfaction in his eyes.
As expected of her disciple, he had destroyed the Seven Stars Hall.
Ming Sihan, what do you want to do?
What are you doing? Naturally, he was going to bring his main body and good disciple back.
Ming Sihan looked at Ling Shoumo, and his eyes became sharp again.
The speed at which they turned hostile was very fast.
Two different appearances.
He left his good temper to Ruyue and his bad temper to Ling Shoumo.
MO Ruyue is a disciple of Xuanling Immortal Sect.
Im not.
MO Ruyue immediately retorted.
Did you hear that? Shes not. Even if she is, I have to take her away because she doesnt want to stay in Xuanling Immortal Sect!
Ming Sihan, do you want to start a war with Xuanling Celestial Sect? Just for a disciple?
Ling Shoumo listened to Ming Sihans words and his face turned ashen.
Would this man go to war with the Xuanling Immortal Sect for a disciple?
Ming Sihan smiled casually and said, What do you think? only have one disciple, so I naturally have to protect him well. Unlike you, who have so many disciples. Its not a big deal to lose one or two. In any case, you dont care if your disciple lives or dies.
He had looked down on Ruyue back then, but now Ruyue was showing her brilliance and showing interest in him again.
However, he was unwilling to let go.
Even if Ruyue was willing, he was not willing to let go.
Ling Shoumos face turned ashen when he heard the mans mockery.
So, you want to start a war with Xuanling Immortal Sect?
If you dont let her go, Ill lead the entire Demon World to tten Xuanling Immortal Sect!
So many immortal sectsbined could not defeat the Demon Realm, and the Mystic Spirit Immortal Sect wanted to defeat the Demon Realm alone?
That was impossible!
Xuanling Immortal Sect could only be defeated.
MO Ruyues mouth twitched when she heard the two of them fighting for her.
What was going on?
It was fine to fight, but dont use her as an excuse to start a war.
The Demon Realm and the immortal sects had long been ipatible. She
was just a fuse.
Since ancient times, men had always used women as an excuse to start a war for their own ambitions, making women the sinners of history. If the two of you want to fight, then fight. Dont start a war so easily.
MO Ruyue shouted.
When two people fought, the only one who could be injured was each other.
If the war started, there would be even more casualties. At that time, she would be cursed by the world.
As a normal person, who would want to be cursed by the world?
Ming Sihan hit the barrier with his palm and cracks appeared on it.
Like a broken ss ball, it instantly disintegrated.
MO Ruyue hurriedly flew up and left the ce when she saw the barrier being forcefully opened.
She quickly went behind Ming Sihan.
Master, youre finally here. This guy is a lunatic.
Master will deal with him.
No, lets go back. I feel disgusted staying here for another moment!
MO Ruyue shook her head. The two of them were equally strong. If they fought, Ming Sihan would be injured even if he won.
Anyway, she was fine and had destroyed the Seven Stars Hall.
Although he had been locked up for a few hours, he was not injured. As long as he could leave, it was enough.
He did not return here in vain. He had disgusted Lan Qi and even sowed discord. He could be considered to have vented his anger!
Seeing that MO Ruyue did not want to stay any longer, Ming Sihan shot Ling Shoumo a cold nce.
Then, he left with MO Ruyue.
This man was lucky.
Ling Shoumo watched Ming Sihan leave with MO Ruyue.
It wasnt that he didnt want to chase after her.
It was useless to chase after her because that woman was already dead set on Ming Sihan.
She must have been brainwashed by Ming Sihan.
MO Ruyue had degenerated into a member of the Devil World. She had truly disappointed him.
He was still so stubborn. Master, youre finally here.
Mo Ruyue looked aggrieved. She looked at the man in front of her and felt that he was extremely handsome.
Especially the moment he descended from the sky, he was like a god descending to the mortal world.
At that time, she was stunned by that scene.
If Ling Shoumo didnt lock her up, she would definitely destroy the entire Xuanling Immortal Sect.
It was all Ling Shoumos fault for locking her up, preventing her from unleashing her strength.
Ive made you suffer. I didnt expect that the dignified master of the Xuanling Immortal Sect would actually cheat on you!
Ming Sihan held the woman in front of him in his arms.
The joy of regaining something he had lost filled his heart.
Having her was like having the whole world.
That uneasy heart finally calmed down.
Uh, dont always say that. Stealing sounds weird. MO Ruyue said awkwardly.
Then, he continued,Master, can you put me down?
Now that they had already left the Xuanling Immortal Sects territory, they would arrive at the Demon Realm in about an hour.
Whats wrong? I feel ufortable in my arms.
Thats not it. It just feels strange.
MO Ruyue shook her head. It wasnt that Ming Sihans embrace wasnt good.
It was just a little strange.
The warmth and smell in his arms were so tempting.
If he continued hugging her like this, he felt that he was bing a little strange.
l dont find it strange.
Ming Sihans face darkened. Did this woman despise him so much?
Did she still miss Ling Shoumo?
Master, but I think Im very heavy. Im a hundred pounds!!! MO Ruyue blushed.
He was afraid that the other party would not be able to carry him.
A hundred catties? I feel like Im only ten pounds when I hug you. Youre too light.
Ming Sihan couldnt feel the weight.
MO Ruyue was too light for him.
She had to admit that this mans words made MO Ruyue very happy.
It was a textbook answer.
It didnt matter if a girl was fat or not. Only a girl could say that she was fat. If others said that she was fat, the girl would be unhappy.
Her figure was still considered tall and graceful, and her flesh had grown to where it should.
Therefore, he did not look fat.
When we go back, we have to eat more.
l dont want to eat.
Why not?
If you want to do it yourself, Im toozy to do it.
MO Ruyue shook her head.
It was tiring to cook every day, but it was okay to cook asionally.
She really admired those women who cooked every day for decades.
If the family liked the food, it was fine to give a good evaluation.
If his family were to be picky andin about this and that, he would feel tired just thinking about it.
If you dont want to cook, I can cook for you.
No, youre the master. How can you let the master serve his disciple?
Why not? Master hates those restrictions the most.
But dont the Demon Realm also have many rules and regtions?
Those are used to restrain others, not me. Uh, Master, is it really okay for you to do this?
Theres no other way. Im a Demon Venerable.
They have to listen to us.
Ming Sihan didnt feel that there was anything wrong with it.
Fearless..
Chapter 827 - 827: Demon Venerable Is So Fierce
Chapter 827 - 827: Demon Venerable Is So Fierce
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyues mouth twitched and she corrected him, Then you are not us.
She was just a disciple of the Demon Lord.
Its all the same.
Ming Sihans dark red eyes darkened.
Suddenly, he seemed to have thought of something and asked with a serious expression, Dont tell me you still have that fellow Ling Shoumo in your heart?
How is that possible? From now on, my master will be the Demon Lord of the Demon World. No one can rece him.
MO Ruyue said seriously.
Ming Sihan was her master.
He was different from Ling Shoumo.
Ling Shoumo had too many disciples, but Ming Sihan only had one.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Ming Sihan finally showed a relieved smile.
He was indeed unique in Ruyues heart.
That Ling Shoumo was not worthy of beingpared to him at all.
The two of them finally returned to the Demon Realm.
MO Chengfeng and the others were about to go to Xuanling Immortal Sect when they discovered the Demon Venerables figure. Moreover, MO Ruyue was in the Demon Venerables arms.
Everyone hadplicated expressions.
Ming Sihannded safely on the ground, and MO Ruyue quickly left the mans embrace.
Thank you for your hard work, Master.
So many people saw Ming Sihan hugging her, and she felt a little awkward.
He wished he could find a hole to hide in.
Ruyue, where did you go?
Seeing MO Ruyue return, He Xi heaved a sigh of relief.
He had found a ce to freeload.
If Ruyue wasnt here, his days in the Demon Realm might havee to an end.
The food in the demon world was too unptable for him to swallow. Sister, its all my fault. I drank too muchst night and fell asleep.
Li Zeyans eyes were filled with tears, and his face was filled with guilt.
The hillghost also began to squeak. If it was by its masters side, it would not have let its master go missing so easily.
Its good that youre back.
Jing Xichen heaved a sigh of relief.
Ruyue, where did you go?
MO Chengfeng nced at Ming Sihan. He couldnt help but worry about MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyues face darkened. I was sleeping and sleeping soundly. But in the middle of the night, I felt someone by my bed. When I opened my eyes, I saw Ling Shoumo. That guy actually kidnapped me to Xuanling Immortal Sect.
How unlucky!
MO Ruyue was furious when she thought of this.
Ming Sihan rubbed MO Ruyues head lovingly, as if he was dering his sovereignty in front of everyone.
Let those guys put away their thoughts that they shouldnt have.
In order to prevent this from happening, from now on, you will sleep in the Demon Pce. This way, even if the Heavenly Kinges, he wont be able to take you away.
It was more reassuring to keep MO Ruyue under his watch.
Fortunately, he was more careful this time and went directly to the Xuanling Immortal Sect to look for her.
Ruyue was indeed there!
What is it? His dignified master actually did such a thing?
Ye Junlin found it unbelievable.
It was just a guess before, but it turned out to be true.
This Master Xuan Ling was indeed not a good person.
Then, Ruyue, did you suffer any grievances in Xuanling Immortal Sect? Ye Yunfeng asked.
If Ruyue was wronged, they would definitely take revenge on Xuanling Immortal Sect!
Their junior sister was not so easy to bully.
Its fine. In any case, Ive already destroyed the Seven Stars Hall of the
Xuanling Immortal Sect.
At this point, MO Ruyues tone carried a trace of pride.
Well done! Brilliant destruction.
Baili Xijians eyes were filled with admiration.
Who asked Xuanling Immortal Sect to not talk about martial virtue first?
Ling Shoumo had actually sneaked into the Demon Realm at night and stolen their Junior Sister Ruyue.
Clearly, he did not take the Demon Realm seriously.
Thats right. Ruyue, you did a good job.
Xia Zhixing apuded.
MO Ruyue nced at the crowd and said in embarrassment,Ive made everyone worried this time.
If you hadnte back, we would have gone to Xuanling Immortal Sect together. Fortunately, you came back safely.
Qi Shaoyu heaved a sigh of relief.
Alright, all of you can leave now. Ruyue needs to rest. After shes done resting, she still needs to practice her swordsmanship. Its time for all of you to improve your strength.
Ming Sihan said in a deep voice. He didnt want Ruyue to spend too much time with these men.
After spending too much time together, it was easy to overlook him.
But he hated the feeling of being ignored.
Yes, Demon Venerable, the six senior brothers replied in unison.
In fact, they were also very surprised. This was the first time the Demon Venerable had urged them to increase their cultivation.
In the past, he did not care about their cultivation at all.
The demon seemed to have changed.
After the six senior brothers left, Ming Sihan nced at Li Zeyan and Hillghost and said coldly,The two of you shouldnt disturb Ruyues cultivation. If Ruyues cultivation was high enough, she wouldnt have been taken away by Ling Shoumo. I can protect my sister.
Li Zeyan retorted.
Last night, he had drunk too much and slept like a log.
He promised that he would never drink again.
Protect? Who brought Ruyue back from Xuanling Immortal Sect this time?
What about you? What did you dost night? Dont you know whats going on?
Protection doesnte from shouting. Ming Sihan scolded Li Zeyan sharply.
Li Zeyans face turned red.
Last night was just an ident.
Li Zeyan lowered his head and mumbled softly.
Her voice was as soft as a mosquitos.
Ming Sihan saw that Li Zeyan didnt want to give up, so he continued,Ruyue was stolen by Ling Shoumo because of this ident!
Do you still think youre very powerful?
MO Ruyue, who was standing at the side, couldnt stand it anymore and quickly tried to smooth things over. Master, Li Zeyan is still a child, and he doesnt have much cultivation. Its normal that he doesnt know that Ling Shoumo is here.
There was no need to be so harsh on a child.
A child?
Ming Sihan looked at Li Zeyan and sneered. This child was a little old.
Li Zeyan, dont forget your identity.
Humph
Li Zeyan snorted and turned his face away.
This man stopped him from getting close to his sister.
Detestable, this was too detestable.
Why did she look exactly like that man?
MO Ruyue looked at the two of them and sighed.Brother Zeyan, Ill leave Gui Gui to you to take care of in the future. Dont worry, Im just staying in the Demon Pce. Its not like I wont be able to see you forever.
Really?
Of course its true.
MO Ruyue nodded.
Li Zeyan nced at Ming Sihan and saw that the man had a look that said,Youre dead if youe.
It was too terrifying.
But someone doesnt want me to see my sister.
Li Zeyan said angrily.
How is that possible? Who forbids you from seeing me?
MO Ruyue frowned slightly.
He was a little puzzled.
Li Zeyans gaze fell on Ming Sihan.
Other than this man, who else could it be?
MO Ruyue followed Li Zeyans gaze and looked at the man behind him.
The man behind her looked elsewhere and did not seem to be looking at her.
l was afraid that someone wouldnt let me see you.
Ming Sihans face darkened. Who was this person talking about?
You brat, what do you mean?
This kid deserved a lesson.
l dont mean anything, sister. The demon is so fierce.
Li Zeyans eyes shed with a silver light.
She seemed to be very wronged.
Uh, its fine. The demon just feels fierce, but hes actually a very good person. MO Ruyue nced at Ming Sihan. She didnt think that Ming Sihan was fierce.
That mans eyes were clearly very gentle.
Li Zeyan originally thought that his sister would talk about the Demon Lord for his sake, but in the end, his sister
In her sisters heart, perhaps there was only the position of the Demon Lord.
Thinking of this, Li Zeyan felt a little heartache. Did his sister no longer have him in her heart?
Chapter 828 - 828: Seven Saint Continent
Chapter 828 - 828: Seven Saint Continent
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Hurry up and bring Gui Gui back. Go do something that you are interested in. Dont spend all your time with big sisters.
MO Ruyue said earnestly.
She didnt want Li Zeyan to be a good-for-nothing.
He hoped that he would be able to stand alone in the future.
Learn more and gain more skills.
Li Zeyan stood in the wind.
Did his sister hate him?
Did she not want to see him again?
He could already feel the disdain in his sisters tone.
She felt terrible.
Li Zeyan was upset, but Ming Sihan was happy.
Seeing this scene, he felt relieved.
Li Zeyan was still being sarcastic and was reprimanded by Ruyue.
Ruyue was really awesome.
As expected of the woman he had taken a fancy to.
Ming Sihan coughed lightly and pretended to be a good person, A boy is so old. Its really impossible for him to be ignorant and ipetent. Why dont we do this? He Xi, havent you always wanted a disciple? Then you should take care of Li Zeyan in the future and teach him some skills!
He Xi, whose name was called, pointed at himself and said,Me?Me? MO Ruyues eyes lit up when she heard that.
Oh right, Miracle Doctor He Xi seemed to have always wanted a disciple. Li Zeyan happened to be free and had no master. It would be better to let Li Zeyan take He Xi as his master.
This was definitely a good idea.
the fertile water should not flow into the fields of others.
Hence, MO Ruyue started to promote Li Zeyan with all her might.Divine Doctor He Xi, Brother Ze Yanyang has a very highprehension ability. He can endure hardships and is especially patient. It would be good if he could only learn a little bit of your medical skills.
Moreover, Brother Zeyans cooking skills are also very good. With Brother
Zeyan around, Ill be able to eat good food every meal in the future.
Originally, He Xi wanted to refuse because he only wanted to take a female disciple.
At first, MO Ruyue was the one who had the highest hopes for Ming Sihan, but she had already been epted by Ming Sihan.
He didnt dare to snatch the dragons disciple.
This dragon had impure intentions towards its disciple, and it was petty and easily jealous.
If he epted MO Ruyue as his disciple, he might be eaten alive by Ming Sihan.
Forget it for the sake of his own life.
If Li Zeyan could cook for him every meal, it would be quite worthwhile to take Li Zeyan as his disciple.
After thinking for a while, He Xi said,Alright, then Ill take him as my disciple, but it still depends on whether hes willing to acknowledge me as his master.
If Li Zeyan was unwilling, he couldnt force him, could he? Brother Zeyan, hurry, hurry up and acknowledge your master.
Mo Ruyue urged. This was a once-in-a-lifetime opportunity.
Li Zeyan did not want to acknowledge her as his master at all. However, seeing how eager his sister was for him to acknowledge her as his master, he did not want to see his sister disappointed.
After thinking for a while, he bowed his head and kowtowed to He Xi,Master, please ept my bow.
Alright, alright. In the future, you must give me more food.
Uh Alright
Li Zeyan was slightly embarrassed.
This man only epted him as his disciple because he could eat, right?
All men were bad, and this man in front of her was no good either.
They were all bad men, just like the Demon Lord!
Li Zeyan secretly despised these men in his heart.
Ruyue, lets go to the Demon Pce to rest first. We can continue practicing the sword after were done resting.
Ming Sihan said in a low voice.
Then, he said to He Xi beside him,Ill leave Li Zeyan in your hands. You have to teach your disciple well. Dont fish for two days and fish for three days. On the surface, these words seemed to be for Li Zeyans own good.
In fact, he was hinting that He Xi should arrange more things for Li Zeyan so that Li Zeyan would not have time to bother Ruyue.
Thats right, Miracle Doctor He Xi, Ill leave little brother Zeyan to you.
Mo Ruyue said sincerely with a smile on her face.
Dont worry. With me around, there will be no idents.
He Xi patted his chest.
He was still very reliable in doing things.
Li Zeyan, why do you look so unhappy? Are you not satisfied? Ming Sihans gaze fell on Li Zeyan.
He saw that fellow lowering his head with a depressed expression.
Still unhappy?
Anyway, he was quite happy.
When MO Ruyue heard Ming Sihans words, she looked at Li Zeyan and patted his shoulder encouragingly.Zeyan, cheer up. In the future, you have a master too.
Yes.
Li Zeyan forced a smile.
He really couldnt feel happy in his heart.
Ruyue, lets go.
Ming Sihan saw that MO Ruyue was in contact with Li Zeyan, so he urged her to take Ruyue away as soon as possible.
He didnt want Li Zeyan to y any tricks.
He really didnt like scheming people.
Oh.
MO Ruyue responded and quickly went up to Ming Sihan.
When she reached Ming Sihans side, she turned to Li Zeyan and made a gesture to cheer him on.
Zeyan, you can do it!
MO Ruyue then left with Ming Sihan.
Li Zeyan and He Xi were left behind.
Seeing MO Ruyue and Ming Sihan leave, He Xi turned around and gave Li
Zeyan a meaningful look.
Why are you always ruining their lives?
What did I destroy?
Cant you tell that the Demon Lord likes your Sister Ruyue?
He Xis pupils shrank. He didnt believe that Li Zeyan couldnt see this.
It was a demonic beast after all.
Li Zeyan turned his face away and said,Sister doesnt like the demon lord.
Feelings need to be cultivated slowly. Dont interfere.
He Xi said with a smile.
In order to help Ming Sihan, he would definitely make Li Zeyan busy.
After all, it was rare for Ming Sihan to fall in love.
How difficult was it to blossom on a ten-thousand-year-old iron tree?
MO Ruyue followed Ming Sihan to the Demon Pce. She secretly checked Ming Sihans favorability towards her.
If he didnt look, he wouldnt know that he was shocked when he saw it.
His Favorability was actually 90.
When did he get promoted?
Wasnt this favorability a little too high?
However, the number of favorable impression points should not have much to do with him.
Her current task was to sleep with Ming Sihan.
However, she felt that she was a person with integrity and could not do that.
For the rest of the time, Ming Sihan taught MO Ruyue how to ride a flying sword.
He also knew how to summon his own sword and be one with it. Master, is there anyone more powerful than you in this world?
MO Ruyue asked curiously.
She had read a lot of books about the demon world and learned that there were other masters in the demon world before Ming Sihan.
However, those experts seemed to have gone to a ce called the Seven Saint
Continent.
Logically speaking, this world should have a few Soul Formation cultivators who had ascended.
Maybe. Who knows?
Ming Sihan smiled indifferently.
What kind of ce is the Seven Saint Continent?
MO Ruyue asked curiously.
He was holding a book in his hand.
She was not particrly fond of reading books, and there would always be iprehensible ssical Chinese texts in the books.
While Ming Sihan was practicing, she picked up a book and took a look.
Seven Saint Continent?
Ming Sihans expression turned serious, and his dark red eyes darkened.
MO Ruyue observed Ming Sihans expression.
He had a vague feeling that his master seemed to know something.
Seeing that Ming Sihan did not speak for a long time, MO Ruyue called out softly, Master?
What was in that ce?
MO Ruyue was a little curious..
Chapter 829 - 829: A Common Enemy
Chapter 829 - 829: A Common Enemy
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The Seven Saint Continent is a ce where experts are asmon as clouds. That ce is where the strong prey on the weak. There are almost no ordinary humans
Hearing Ming Sihans description, MO Ruyues beautiful eyes widened.
What a magical world.
There were no ordinary humans.
Wouldnt we be living in a crevice there?
So that was where all the experts went.
More or less.
Ming Sihan thought for a moment and met MO Ruyues gaze. Youre so curious about the Seven Saint Continent. Do you really want to go there?
I want to go, but I dont dare to. Master, you said it yourself. There are so many experts there. I cant even defeat Ling Shoumo here. Ill be oppressed if I go there.
MO Ruyue gave up on the idea of going to the Seven Saint Continent.
Although she was very curious about that magical world, she was still a little afraid.
It was not bad to stay here and be a local tyrant.
Master, do you want to go to that world?
MO Ruyue ced the book in her hand on the bookshelf beside her and couldnt help but ask curiously.
He would be able to go to the Seven Saint Continent when he seeded in transcending the tribtion.
It was no wonder that there were no cultivators who transcended the tribtion above the Nascent Soul realm in this world.
It was because everyone had gone to the Seven Saint Continent after transcending the tribtion.
The question that had been bothering him for so long was finally answered.
Its not that I dont want to go, but I have to go. Ming Sihan lowered his eyes. He had to go to that world.
Moreover, he had to go.
Because he wanted to know the answer.
MO Ruyue wanted to ask something, but seeing that Ming Sihans expression was not right, she did not ask.
Could it be that the Demon Lord once had a woman he loved deeply, and that woman had abandoned him and gone to the Seven Saint Continent?
Therefore, Ming Sihan had to go to the Seven Saint Continent and ask that woman why she abandoned him!
It must be like this.
At this moment, MO Ruyue was already imagining a big scene in her mind.
Ming Sihan looked at Ruyues back. If he wanted to go, he wanted to bring MO Ruyue along.
However, Mo Ruyues current cultivation base was not enough to go there.
Will you follow Master to the Seven Saint Continent? l, Im not strong enough. If I go there, Ill be beaten up. MO Ruyue turned around with an awkward expression.
She didnt want to drag him down. Dont worry, I will help you.
This
Seeing Ming Sihans determination, MO Ruyue didnt know how to reject him.
It was obvious that Ming Sihan valued it very much. Its settled then. When the timees, Ill bring you along.
In the next few days, Master will have to leave. He had never considered this matter before.
Now, it was time to consider this matter properly.
He could not possibly leave Ruyue alone in this world.
If he wanted to leave, he would have to bring Ruyue along.
His cultivation already showed signs of breaking through, and there was not much time left for him.
Leave for a while? Master, where are you going?
MO Ruyue looked at Ming Sihan. It seemed that Ming Sihan was going to leave.
What was this guy doing?
Go and get some good things to refresh your cultivation.
Then Ill go with Master!
MO Ruyue suggested.
As long as there was something good that could increase ones cultivation, it must be a very dangerous ce.
If that ce was not dangerous, there would definitely be many people going there, and everyones cultivation would increase.
Theres no need. Youre practicing the summoning technique in the Demon Pce and riding a sword. Ill have to check on you when Ie back. If you ck off and fail, Ill definitely punish you.
Ming Sihans expression was serious.
Hearing the mans words, MO Ruyue felt that the man in front of her looked like a parent.
Parents had to go out to work and let their children do their homework at home.
When the parents finished their work outside and came back, they had to
check their homework. If they did not do their homework properly, they would be punished.
He immediately felt the pressure.
Master, dont worry. Ill study hard and improve every day.
Mo Ruyue made a face of assurance.
Ill also set up an array formation here to prevent thieves. When the timees, you dont have to worry about the people from Xuanling Immortal Secting.
Yes, I understand, Master.
MO Ruyue replied.
Why did it feel like Ming Sihan was hiding a mistress in his house?
Of course, all of this was just MO Ruyues wild imagination.
The night sky was dark, and a cool breeze blew.
A blood moon appeared in the sky.
Everyone saw the bright red blood moon.
Master, the moon is so red.
MO Ruyue pointed at the moon in the sky with an incredulous expression.
He had never seen such a red moon before. It was so strange.
Ming Sihan looked up at the blood-red moon, and his expression became even more serious.
Seeing that Ming Sihan was silent, Mo Ruyue whispered,Master, I heard that the appearance of a red moon will lead to a disaster. Does this mean that a disaster is about to happen?
She hoped that she was being superstitious.
Ming Sihan pursed his lips and said in a low voice, Thest time the Blood
Moon appeared was 300 years ago. A demon called Subus turned the entire world into purgatory. What? More demonic than our Demon Realm?
MO Ruyues lips twitched.
There was actually such a thing!
It was unbelievable.
Our Demon Realm is ultimately formed by humans and Demonic Beasts. As for the subus, it is an illusion formed by the desires of countless humans and Demonic Beasts. The stronger the desire, the stronger the subus strength
MO Ruyue seemed to understand.
Wasnt this the same as the Evil Sword Immortal?
It was too magical.
She didnt know why, but she wasnt afraid. Instead, she was a little excited.
It was over. She might be a pervert.
This time, I wonder what kind of demon it is.
Ming Sihan sighed.
He ced his hands behind his back and looked at the blood moon.
There was a hint of worry in his dark red eyes.
This kind of demon would harm all humans and demon beasts, regardless of race.
At this moment, He Xi came over with a nervous expression.
Ah Ming, do you see that? Do you see that?
Ming Sihan and MO Ruyue looked at He Xi at the same time and saw He Xi panting as she walked over. What did you see?
Ming Sihan asked calmly.
Look at how nervous this guy was.
The blood moon in the sky. Once the blood moon appears, there will definitely be a disaster. Its over, its over. Its especially difficult to deal with!
Im not asking you to deal with him. What are you nervous about?
Well, thats true, but I still hope I can help.
This was a matter of the world. This was not to help others, but to help himself.
Evil Demons were theirmon enemy!
There are so many immortal sects. Let them think of a way to deal with them.
Ming Sihan snorted.
It wasnt that he didnt have a n, but that those people from the immortal sects had high standards and looked down on the Demon Realm.
She didnt even wee him, so how could he be so cold?
Thats true. However, I think those people from the immortal sects are all freeloaders now. Theyre useless!
He Xi shook his head. He didnt think highly of those people from the immortal sects.
In his opinion, those people were a bunch of good-for-nothings.
Not many were useful.
He Xi, how is brother Zeyan now?
Mo Ruyue asked curiously.
She wondered if Li Zeyan had been learning from He Xi.
Since Li Zeyan was unwilling to cultivate, he would learn medical skills from
He Xi. At least he had a skill.
Oh, hes asleep.
Sleeping?
Mo Ruyue frowned. It was only seven oclock in the evening. Li Zeyan usually did not sleep at this time.
Yeah, I taught him how to identify medicinal herbs today and made him go to the mountains to look for medicinal herbs for a day. Hes exhausted. He Xi chuckled.
When Ming Sihan heard this, he gave He Xi an appreciative look.
He Xi had done a good job.
He Xi understood and winked at Ming Sihan.
He was the best matchmaker in the world.
It was even more reliable than going to the human world to worship the God of Marriage.
Its gettingte. I wont disturb your rest.
He Xi tactfully left, leaving the ce for the two of them.
Seeing He Xi leave, Ming Sihan felt that this guy was bing more and more pleasing to the eye..
Chapter 830 - 830: A Serious Disaster
Chapter 830 - 830: A Serious Disaster
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ming Sihan walked into the room and suddenly thought of something. He said to MO Ruyue, Come with me.
Oh.
MO Ruyue followed Ming Sihan to his room without suspecting anything. She thought that Ming Sihan had something to tell her again.
The man went to the bed and began to take off his coat.
MO Ruyue stopped in her tracks and stared nkly at the scene before her.
Did Master want her to sleep with him?
This
Although she had a mission to sleep with Ming Sihan, this guy was so proactive.
Wouldnt that be a little bad?
Come here for a moment.
Ming Sihan couldnt help but call out when he saw MO Ruyue standing motionlessly outside.
PW-Should I go over?
MO Ruyue hesitated and felt a little embarrassed.
The atmosphere had be subtle. She could only feel her heart pounding.
Yes,e here.
There was a deep smile on Ming Sihans handsome face. His smile was intoxicating, and it made MO Ruyues heart flutter.
Master cant be like this!
The dim candlelight, the warm breath, and the mans maic voice rang in her ears.
At this moment, MO Ruyues mind was already spinning rapidly.
This, this, this, how bad is this!
Ming Sihan sat by the bed and did not see MO Ruyueing over.
Why was this girl so indecisive?
What are you still standing there for? Arent you going to hurry over? Ming Sihan asked in a low voice and stared at the girl in front of him.
What for?
Mo Ruyues voice was weak and a little nervous.
It was her first time!
It was not good to just let it go like this.
She didnt hate Ming Sihan, but she still felt that things were progressing a little too fast.
There should have been something in between.
Im naturally giving you something good.
Ming Sihan smiled mysteriously.
Something good?
Sorry, MO Ruyue was thinking about AD calcium milk.
Her face turned even redder.
She never knew that Ming Sihan would be so direct.
It was really embarrassing.
Disciple, can you not take the good stuff?
MO Ruyue lowered her head and whispered.
She was afraid that she wouldnt be able to handle such a good thing.
It was better to leave it for those who needed it more.
She could not ept it all of a sudden.
It was a little too rushed.
Of course not. This good thing is too important to you.
Ming Sihan insisted.
If he didnt know how to take good things, he would be an idiot.
l dont think its that important.Mo Ruyue muttered in a low voice.What if I give birth to a little life?
She was still a child. How could a child take care of a child?
Come here.
Ming Sihan!s face darkened when he saw that MO Ruyue was unwilling toe over.
How many times did he have to say it? This girl was willing toe over.
MO Ruyue shivered and cursed inwardly.
However, he still pretended to be calm.
His masters courtship failed, and he actually flew into a rage out of humiliation.
Could it be that he wanted to force himself on her?
This
A man like Master could have any woman he wanted. Even though she thought so, she still tiptoed over to the bed.
Master.
MO Ruyue whispered.
Go to bed.
Ming Sihan nodded and motioned for MO Ruyue to go up herself.
This girl was usually quite clever. Why was she so muddle-headed at this time?
MO Ruyue took off her shoes and climbed onto the soft bed.
He gritted his teeth and closed his eyes.
He had alsopleted the Salted Fish Systems mission.
Thinking of this, MO Ruyue finally felt relieved.
Shey down, feeling extremely nervous.
Master, does it hurt?
It was said that it would be very painful.
It wont hurt to remove your cultivation, but it will take a long time.
Cultivation?
MO Ruyues lips twitched. She was overthinking things.
She had been nervous for so long.
She immediately sat up and crossed her legs.
Yes, I am.
Ming Sihan also came up and asked MO Ruyue to sit facing him.
Then, he began to tell MO Ruyue what she needed to pay attention to when she was cultivating.
He wanted to give some of his cultivation base to Ruyue so that her cultivation base would grow faster.
When he seeded in transcending his tribtion, he would be able to bring Ruyue along to the Seven Saint Continent.
Mo Ruyue felt so ashamed that she wanted to p herself.
It turned out that her thoughts were actually so dirty.
He spat on himself in his heart.
She had said that her master was not that kind of person. She was the one who had thought too much.
Why are you so absent-minded?
After exining some things to take note of, Ming Sihan realized that the woman in front of him was absent-minded. He didnt know what she was thinking.
What he said was the main point, so he had to remember it.
It was not that easy to ovee ones cultivation.
It would be troublesome halfway, and some idents would be life-threatening.
Therefore, he hoped that Ruyue would listen to him seriously and strictly abide by his words.
Master, 1 . . .
MO Ruyue lowered her head. She seemed to be in a daze.
Ming Sihan said slowly, Ill say it again. Listen carefully.
Yes, alright.
This time, MO Ruyue became serious.
The appearance of the Blood Moon sounded the rm for everyone in the world.
This indicated that a great disaster was about to descend.
The people of the human world began all kinds of memorial ceremonies.
Everyone did this because they wanted to obtain the blessings of the gods so that disaster would not befall the human world.
In addition, some rich people even wanted to seek the protection of the immortal sect.
Buying Ping An at a high price.
What they didnt know was that the people from the immortal sects might not be able to protect them.
Ling Shoumos expression was solemn. He immediately sent invitations to all the immortal sects.
The next day, all the sect masters of the immortal sects went to Xuanling Sect.
Everyone gathered together to discuss important matters.
Why arent you discussing this matter at the Seven Stars Hall?
Some of the sect leaders asked in puzzlement.
Usually, if there were any important meetings, everyone woulde to Xuanling Immortal Sects Seven Stars Hall to discuss them.
The first time, they had a meeting in an inconspicuous ce.
At this critical juncture, dont care where we discuss the matter. The main point is the Blood Moon matter.
Thats right. Once the Blood Moon appears, there will definitely be a serious disaster. The heavy burden will fall on us. We have to save the people of the world.
Thats right. We gathered together to better discuss how to face the impending disaster. It wasnt to decide where to hold the meeting.
The sect leaders who were originally dissatisfied finally shut their mouths.
Ling Shoumo looked at everyones expressions indifferently.
The Seven Stars Hall had just been destroyed by MO Ruyue and had yet to be repaired.
It would probably take several months to rebuild the Seven Stars Hall.
l think everyone saw the Blood Moonst night, right?
Ling Shoumo asked calmly. There was no emotion on his face.
That pair of eyes was like an ancient well, without a trace of emotion.
Yeah, I was really scared when I saw the blood moonst night.
Thest time the blood moon appeared was three hundred years ago. It was said that many people died at that time!
Theres no need to say it. Many people did die at that time.
So, will many people die this time?
Thats hard to say. The appearance of the Blood Moon definitely wont stop people from taking their lives. More or less, some people wont be able to survive. What we need to do is to minimize the number of casualties. It was impossible to protect everyone. They could only reduce the mortality rate..
Chapter 831 - 831: Foolish Fool
Chapter 831 - 831: Foolish Fool
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
At this time, the Tomato Immortal Sects sect leader said, think everyone should unite, regardless of friend or foe. Its best to organize the people of the
Demon Realm as well.
After all, the Demon Realm was also an unshakable force.
As soon as these words were said, they were immediately refuted by the other sect masters.
Are you crazy? But how can we collude with the devil in the devil world?
Thats right, Im the first one who disagrees with uniting with the mo territories. Then Ill be the second.
Ill be third.
The Tomato Immortal Sects Sect Leaders face darkened and he the enemy in front of us, we should unite against the outside world. No matter how bad the people of the Demon Realm are, they cant kill all the people in the world. However, the disaster after the Blood Moon is facing all the people in the world, as well as us immortal sects.
Unity, you go and unite yourself. Dont drag us in. Were not jackals of the same feather as the people of the Demon Realm.
Someone said disdainfully.
It was an insult to them to unite with the Demon Realm.
You guys
The Tomato Immortal Sects sect master was so angry that he couldnt say anything.
Why didnt he look at the time?
A great cmity was before them, a matter of life and death.
These people were still like this
Sect Master Xuanling, say something.
The Tomato Immortal Sects Sect Leader looked at Ling Shoumo.
These people didnt have the final say. In the end, it still depended on Ling Shoumos decision.
No one said a word. Their eyes fell on Ling Shoumo, who was silent.
Everyone had been invited by Ling Shoumo, but he had not said a word.
He did not know what this fellow meant. l agree with what the Tomato Immortal Sect Master said.
Ling Shoumos words shocked everyone.
They didnt expect Ling Shoumo to be willing to ally himself with the Demon Realm.
Sect Master Xuanling, thats the Demon Realm. Demons have always been irreconcble existences with us!
l know.
That Xuanling Sect Master still did this. Isnt it damaging our sects reputation?
Ling Shoumo suddenly stood up and said in a loud voice, I hope everyone can weigh the pros and cons. With a great enemy in front of us, its best for us to unite against the enemy. I hope you understand the principle of losing the lips and biting the teeth.
When doing things, use your brain!
We didnt do it. The sect leader of Xuanling Sect is right. When the disaster is over, we can do whatever we want.
Why didnt these men have any sense of the big picture?
Usually, he said that he had a big structure, but now?
All of them were still thinking about their reputation.
The strength of the Demon Realm was undeniable.
If the Demon Realm was not powerful, it would have long been wiped out by the people of the immortal sects.
Since Ling Shoumo had already said so, there was nothing else for everyone to say.
None of them said a word. In any case, they were not willing to talk about cooperation with the Demon Realm.
Then who will talk to the Demon Realm about cooperation? Do you think they will agree to our cooperation?
Yeah, we dont like the Demon Realm, and the Demon Realm doesnt like us either.
Everyone felt that it was impossible for the Demon Realm to cooperate with them.
Moreover, this kind of matter needed to be discussed with the Demon Realm. As for who would be the representative, everyone looked at each other.
Who should we send to meet with the Demon Realm? He had to send a representative to inform the people of the Demon Realm, right?
First of all, I dont want to go.
Me too.
The people from the other immortal sects all declined.
They felt that whoever came up with this idea should go. Ling Shoumo said calmly, Ill go. Xuanling Sect Leader is indeed the leader of the sect leaders.
Yes, he has foresight and a structure.
Then Ill leave this matter to the sect master of Xuanling Sect.
Everyone was secretlyughing in their hearts when they praised Ling Shoumo.
They felt that if Ling Shoumo went to the Demon Realm and said that he wanted to seekmon ground while reserving differences, he would probably beughed at by the people of the Demon Realm.
At that time, he would be ruthlessly humiliated by the people of the Demon Realm.
In any case, they were not willing to be the sucker.
The immortal sects gathered together and talked about some other topics. They talked about what precautions they needed to take before the disaster descended.
And what would happen after the disaster.
All of this had to be taken into consideration.
The human world was the first to be hit by the disaster. When the time came, they would assign people to help the people survive the disaster.
If he couldnt help everything, he would help a little!
demon world
Ming Sihan gave Ruyue a chance to cultivate.
She was originally at the early stage of the foundation establishment stage, but when she opened her eyes, she instantly became a golden core stage demonic cultivator.
Its over. You should stay here and rest.
Ming Sihan took a deep breath. He had finally seeded.
There were almost no idents in the process of passing through his cultivation, so passing through his cultivation was quite smooth. MO Ruyue only felt a little tired because she was unable to absorb all the cultivation that had suddenly poured into her body.
She feltzy.
He felt that he needed a good rest.
Master, where are you going?
MO Ruyue looked at Ming Sihan with a dazed expression.
Ming Sihan looked even better in her hazy vision.
There are other things to deal with. Rest well. Youll be energetic after a while.
Ming Sihan reached out and patted Mo Ruyues head, his eyes filled with pity.
He could not rest. There were still many things to deal with.
Oh, Master, you should go and settle your matters first.
MO Ruyue could no longer bear the sleepiness. No matter whose room or bed this was, she just wanted to close her eyes and have a good sleep. Only when he slept well would he have the energy to do other things.
Yes.
Ming Sihan stood up, put on his coat, and left the bedroom in a hurry.
His face was slightly pale, and his eyes were solemn, without any warmth. After leaving, he called MO Chengfeng over and asked him to contact the leaders of all the demon world tribes.
Mo Chengfeng epted the order and left.
When he saw Ming Sihans pale face, he wanted to ask what was wrong, but in the end, he didnt ask.
He did not see Ruyue either.
All the tribe leaders were summoned to the Demon Pce.
These leaders were all Golden Core demonic cultivators.
They submitted to Ming Sihan. Greetings, Demon Lord.
All the tribal leaders said in unison.
At this moment, everyone already knew why the Demon Lord was looking for them.
After all, everyone had seen the Blood Moonst night.
They did not expect that they would actually encounter something that was rarely seen in 300 years.
Regarding the events of the past three hundred years, whether it was them, the immortal sects, or the human world, there were almost simr records.
In short, the appearance of the blood moon was an ominous sign.
Especially in the human world, the ominous signs of the blood moon were more serious than the ominous signs of twins.
Children born after the Blood Moon were usually killed.
Because people were afraid that the evil would find a newborns body as a parasite, they would rather kill a thousand people than let one go.
Of course, only the human world had such a method.
Their Demon Realm would not do such a thing.
This was because they knew more about how the Evils were formed than those people, and they did not need to find a babys body as a parasite.
Even if they told these things to those ignorant people, those ignorant people still chose to believe in their own methods.
It was as if twins were an ominous sign. Their Demon Realm did not have such a thing.
But there was one in the human world!
Chapter 832 - 832: This Is What Family Feels Like
Chapter 832 - 832: This Is What Family Feels Like
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When MO Ruyue opened her eyes, she felt veryfortable. She had slept so well.
However, she still did notplete the mission given by the system.
Fortunately, the Salted Fish System did not force her toplete the mission. However, if she did notplete this mission, she would not be able to receive the reward and would not be able to proceed to the next mission.
The losses were not particrly great.
He just felt that it would be a pity if he did not get the reward.
There was nothing bad about the rest.
She opened her eyes and smelled a faint fragrance. This fragrance was exactly the same as the one on Ming Sihans body.
It was fascinating.
She hugged the soft nket and took a deep breath.
Was it really good for a man to smell so good?
However, she was still quite curious about it.
Soon, she realized that her actions seemed a little too wretched.
So, she quickly let go of Ming Sihans nket and quickly got up from his bed.
She got out of bed and tidied up the nket.
It was to prevent the nket from being full of wrinkles.
She didnt know what Ming Sihan had gone to do.
She heard a voiceing from the other side of the hall and followed it.
Ming Sihans maic voice came from the hall.
It carried a sense of deterrence.
Was this the dominance of a Demon Venerable?
MO Ruyue thought to herself. Does everyone understand?
Understood!
Everyone replied in unison. They knew that the appearance of the Blood Moon would bring disaster, and these disasters would also have a certain impact on the Demon Realm.
MO Ruyue knew that they were discussing something.
It wasnt good for him to eavesdrop outside, so he left.
The people inside were probably talking about the Blood Moon.
In the world she lived in, the blood moon was actually just a rtively rare celestial phenomenon. It did not have the ominous signs of the legends.
Everyone believed in science.
But here, science didnt seem to have much use.
This was all metaphysics.
Nio Ruyue walked outside. She summoned her Ghost Sense and rode her flying sword to see Li Zeyan.
She wanted to know how Li Zeyan was doing with his studies.
However, when she went over, she saw a man lying on a rocking chair by the river. The man covered his face with a lotus leaf and seemed to be sleeping.
Bathed in the sunlight, he felt veryfortable.
There was a table next to him. Li Zeyan was sleeping on the table, and his face was covered in ck ink.
It looked a little funny.
Both master and disciple were sleeping.
MO Ruyuended on the ground and took two steps forward.
Li Zeyan suddenly opened his eyes, and his pupils revealed a murderous aura.
When his gazended on MO Ruyue, the killing intent in his eyes vanished.
Then, it was covered with ayer of joy.
Sister!
He eximed and jumped up from his chair.
This sudden sound scared He Xi, who was sleeping beside him, so much so that she immediately sat up.
His entire body quivered.
He looked around to see what was going on.
What happened?
He Xi said with a solemn expression.
He looked like he was still in a daze.
The lotus leaf also fell to the ground.
No, its nothing. Master, sister is here.
Li Zeyan stared at MO Ruyue with sparkling eyes.
As long as he saw his sister, his mood would be especially good.
He Xi, its me. Im here to see how Zeyan is doing.
MO Ruyue smiled helplessly. Her appearance seemed to have frightened He Xi.
He Xi turned around and heaved a sigh of relief. Shey back on the rocking chair and yawned. l thought something had happened.
No, nothing happened.
MO Ruyue smiled faintly.
Li Zeyan walked towards MO Ruyue and said,Sister, Zeyan is very good at learning. He just identally fell asleep.
He had indeed learned quite well. Anyway, what went in the left ear came out the right.
That long period of teaching was of little use to him.
In any case, he just couldnt learn it.
Hearing Li Zeyans words, He Xi couldnt help but say,Grandma Wang is selling melons and boasting.
This was the first time he knew how difficult it was to take care of a disciple.
If it wasnt for Ming Sihans happiness, he really wanted to give up.
Li Zeyan was not cut out for that.
The same medicinal herbs, if learned today, forgotten tomorrow.
It was too ridiculous.
He had never seen such a difficult disciple.
Li Zeyan felt a chill run down his spine when he heard He Xis words.
He Xi, dont ruin his reputation.
Hmm?
Nio Ruyue was puzzled. Did Li Zeyan not learn well?
Seeing the ck ink on Li Zeyans face, she said,Hurry up and wipe your face, you look like a little cat.
Is my face very dirty?
Yes, theres a piece of ink. Hurry up and go
Before she could finish, Li Zeyan had already run away.
Looking at Li Zeyans receding figure,
MO Ruyues mouth twitched. This guy ran so fast.
Like a rabbit.
Li Zeyan covered his face. He never expected that there would be a lump of ink on his face.
If her sister saw its ugly appearance, she would definitely despise it to death.
Because her sister had once said that she didnt like ugly things.
He did not want to be ugly.
After Li Zeyan left, MO Ruyue turned her gaze to He Xia
Honestly, hows Li Zeyans studies?
He Xi sighed deeply. It wasnt that he wanted to badmouth Li Zeyan, but that Li Zeyan was really disappointing.
l can only say that hes really not cut out to study medicine. I forgot everything I taught you yesterday.
He Xi shook his head. He had never seen such a difficult disciple.
Seeing MO Ruyues expression turn grave, He Xi could only say,Dont worry, I wont give up on him because of this.
Thank you, Miracle Doctor He Xi.
Nio Ruyue said gratefully.
Gradually, she began to treat Li Zeyan as her own younger brother.
It was as if she had once had such a biological brother.
There was a strange sense of familiarity.
This sense of familiarity with Li Zeyan was not there from the beginning. It was onlyter.
As for when, she had already forgotten.
She felt very familiar. With Li Zeyan by her side, she felt inexplicably at ease.
That guy clearly couldnt protect her, but
He couldnt exin it clearly.
Perhaps this was the feeling of family?
In the other world, she did not have a family. She could be considered an orphan with no one to rely on. She had been in the welfare home for as long as she could remember.
After finishing his studies, he started working.
She was always alone and felt that she was out of ce in that world.
Therefore, she didnt miss her previous world much aftering here.
The only regret was that she couldnt y the game, and no one could inherit her precious eight!
Other than that, he had no other regrets.
Its not hard, its not hard. This is what I should do. Who asked me to agree to be Li Zeyans master?
He Xi waved his hand.
He was willing to ept Li Zeyan as his disciple, but not because of MO Ruyue.
It was all for Ming Sihans lifelong happiness.
After a while, Li Zeyan appeared. The ink on Li Zeyans face had been washed clean.
Sister, do you see any ink on my face?
Li Zeyan asked as he looked at Nio Ruyue..
Chapter 833 - 833: The Best Master in the World
Chapter 833 - 833: The Best Master in the World
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue shook her head and pinched Li Zeyans soft cheeks. Theres no more ink on your face.
You must learn well from Miracle Doctor He Xi. The things you learn can be put to use in the future.
Will sister get sick too?
Li Zeyans eyes narrowed.
Of course. Who wouldnt get sick?
MO Ruyue smiled. Although cultivators had good physiques, they would rarely catch a cold or suffer a stroke.
But sometimes, if he was identally poisoned or had some other small illness, he would need a doctor.
It was not that cultivators did not get sick, but the probability of getting sick was lower than that of ordinary people.
However, the probability of cultivators being poisoned was higher than that of ordinary people.
And it wasnt an ordinary height.
Yes, for my sister, I will definitely study medicine well and seriously.
Li Zeyans face was filled with determination.
In order to use his medical skills to save his sister in the future.
He would definitely study medicine seriously.
From this moment on, Li Zeyans gaze became exceptionally serious.
Once he decided on something, he would do it perfectly.
Li Zeyan returned to the table and started reading the medical book seriously.
The corners of He Xis mouth twitched when he saw this scene.
His lips were worn out. All that he said was useless to Li Zeyan.
However, MO Ruyues words were enough to change Li Zeyan into a different person.
It was unbelievable.
It was too unbelievable.
He was extremely shocked.
How could this work?
Ruyue, youre still the best.
He Xi gave MO Ruyue a thumbs up.
It turned out that MO Ruyue was Li Zeyans best master.
This child has always been quite obedient.
MO Ruyue said with a smile.
She was quite satisfied with Li Zeyans performance.
At this moment, He Xi seemed to have sensed something. With a serious expression, he said hesitantly, Your cultivation seems to have increased a
If Im not wrong, youre already in the Golden Core stage, right?
He only reacted now.
What kind of fortuitous encounter did this woman have? She had actually be a Golden Core demonic cultivator!
If those Golden Core cultivators knew that this woman had broken through from the Foundation Establishment stage to the Golden Core stage in a short period of time, they would definitely be envious and jealous.
Other people took years or decades to break through to the Golden Core stage, but this woman had only broken through in a short period of time.
This was simply heaven-defying.
You found out.
MO Ruyue was surprised. The strength of a Golden Core cultivator was indeed very strong.
How did you break through?
He Xi asked curiously.
Its my master. He helped me with my cultivation. Otherwise, I wouldnt have broken through to the Golden Core realm. MO Ruyue said honestly.
She was touched from the bottom of her heart.
Her master was so good to her, but she thought about her masters position as the Demon Lord every day.
Wasnt she a little too bad? How could she do such a thing?
MO Ruyue thought to herself.
Her master had done so much for her, so she must be filial to her master in the future.
Otherwise, he would be letting his master down.
She was not an ungrateful person. She knew how to repay kindness.
What?!
Hearing this, He Xi stood up excitedly.
MO Ruyue was startled.
This guy doesnt want to go to the Seven Saint Continent?
He Xi pursed her lips. Ming Sihan was really a lunatic!
He didnt even say anything about such an important matter like cultivation. Wasnt he afraid that something would happen and take his life?
If it was light, he would lose his cultivation, and if it was serious, he would lose his life.
This was because the method of limiting ones cultivation was a little against thew of cultivation.
If it was so easy to measure cultivation, everyone would just casually measure it.
Ming Sihan would be able to go to the Seven Saint Continent soon. Now that he hadpleted his cultivation, wouldnt he have to wait for a long time?
He Xi couldnt understand Ming Sihans actions.
Miracle Doctor He Xi, you know about the Seven Saint Continent as well?
MO Ruyue asked curiously,
He Xi nodded. Not only did he know about the Seven Saint Continent, but he and Ming Sihan were also abandoned in this world by the Seven Saint Continents families.
Yes, I know a little.
He Xi tried to calm himself down. It had already happened, and there was no point in talking about anything else.
He stared at MO Ruyue as if he had understood something.
It seemed that Ming Sihan wanted to bring MO Ruyue back to the Seven Saint
Continent.
Ruyue, treat Ah Ming well. He really treats you well.
He Xi said earnestly.
MO Ruyue nodded in agreement and my master is really good to me. Dont worry, I will definitely treat my master as my own father.
Father?
The corner of He Xis mouth twitched.
It turned out that MO Ruyue still regarded Ming Sihan as her respected master.
This
Dont you think that Ah Ming treats you better than your father?
He Xi knocked on the side and asked.
Eh? I dont have a biological father, so I dont know. But I think my master should be very good.
You know what? Previously, my master in Xuanling Immortal Sect was Ling Shoumo. He had never looked me in the eye for so long, let alone given me anything good. Im a more practical person. Giving me good things is good for me.
MO Ruyue snorted.
After all, he didnt have to take responsibility for what he said.
Of course, she was not the kind of person who would spout nonsense. He Xi nodded slightly and said,Thats for sure. Ah Ming treats you
His thoughts were not ordinary.
As the two of them were talking, they saw Ming Sihans figureing over.
My master is the best master in the world.
MO Ruyue shouted happily.
The man behind her stopped in his tracks, and his heart instantly bloomed with joy.
He heard Ruyue say that he was the best master in the world.
Then, he would definitely be a few streets ahead of Ling Shoumo.
As expected of Ming Sihans disciple, she had good taste.
He Xi saw Ming Sihan and couldnt help but call out, Ah Ming, youre here?
Hearing He Xis voice, MO Ruyue turned her head and saw Ming Sihan walking towards her.
Master, are you done with your meeting?
MO Ruyue asked.
Yes, when I went back, I saw that you werent in your room, so I came here to take a look.
Ming Sihan nodded slightly, his dark red eyes only had MO Ruyues figure in them.
It was as if there was no one else besides her.
He Xi stared at Ming Sihans face. This guys face was a little pale.
It should have been caused by his cultivation.
He Xi didnt quite understand what Ming Sihan was doing.
Ruyue, take Zeyan out first. I have something to tell your master.
Alright.
Nio Ruyue nodded in agreement and immediately prepared to leave with Li Zeyan.
However, she was quickly stopped by the group and her hand was tightly grabbed by Ming Sihan.
Master, He Xi has something to tell vou.
MO Ruyue lowered her head and looked at her wrist. Her Masters hand was so big that he could easily grab her wrist.
Compared to her masters hand, her wrist seemed a little small.
He Xi wanted to whisper something to him, so why was he grabbing his wrist?
MO Ruyue was very puzzled.
She blinked her eyes in confusion..
Chapter 834 - 834: Disgusting
Chapter 834 - 834: Disgusting
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ruyue isnt an outsider. If you have anything to say, just say it.
Ming Sihan said to He Xi.
He Xi treated Ruyue as an outsider.
Ming Sihan didnt like this.
Uh
The corner of He Xis mouth twitched slightly. They hadnt even started talking yet, but Ming Sihan really didnt think of himself as an outsider.
MO Ruyue looked at the two of them, observed their expressions, and slowly said, Master, why dont you guys chat? Zeyan and I will go prepare dinner.
She didnt want the two of them to have any conflicts.
It was just a matter of avoiding him. It was not a big deal.
It was a natural evasion.
No need. Youre not an outsider.
Ming Sihan insisted, not letting MO Ruyue leave.
Its not really anything important. Its fine to stay here and listen. He Xi said.
Even if its something important, Ruyue can listen here! Ming Sihan emphasized.
Did this fellow know that his words could easily hurt Ruyue?
What did he mean by its okay to listen to unimportant things?
Cant I listen to important things?
Ah, right, right, right
He Xi said helplessly. Was this man still the same Ming Sihan that he used to know?
Perhaps this was the magic of love.
Tell me, what is it?
Ming Sihan asked seriously. He did not let go of MO Ruyues wrist.
He did not use too much strength, afraid that he would hurt Ruyue.
He Xi looked at MO Ruyue with aplicated expression.
What did you do to Ruyue? Right?
Ming Sihan!s expression changed and he immediately let go of MO Ruyues
wrist.
Ruyue, you and Li Zeyan go and prepare dinner first. He turned to MO
Ruyue.
He Xi and Mo Ruyue were both speechless.
This person was really amazing.
Alright then.
MO Ruyue helplessly left with Li Zeyan.
He felt like he had been yed.
However, she still chose to forgive him.
It was inevitable that he would be muddle-headed when he was old.
He Xi watched MO Ruyue and Li Zeyan leave, and a smile spread across his face. He said teasingly,Ruyue is not an outsider. Even if its something important, Ruyue can listen here.
He imitated Ming Sihans tone and mocked him. He had even said it before, but now there was
Hmph, I just dont want Ruyue to worry.
Ming Sihan snorted.
He didnt know that He Xi was going to talk about cultivation.
If it was about cultivation, he wouldnt be so confident.
He Xi stopped smiling and stood up from the rocking chair.Why are you doing this? Do you know how dangerous it is to cross the threshold of cultivation?
She was already so old. Did she still treat herself as a child?
It wasnt like MO Ruyues cultivation couldnt be improved. Was there a need to limit her cultivation?
You might lose your cultivation, and all your years of hard work will be in vain.
He Xi was somewhat helpless facing this man.
He seeded in not mastering his cultivation base? What you were worried about didnt happen.
Its best if it doesnt happen. If it really happens, 1 wont be able to save you!
He Xi snorted. He was a doctor, not a god!
Not everyone could be treated. Alright, I understand.
Ming Sihan said impatiently.
He understood the logic, but he had his own ns and ideas.
Therefore, he had no choice.
Seeing the mans impatient face, He Xi didnt pay too much attention to it. Instead, she asked curiously,Why did you transfer your cultivation to Ruyue?
Could it really be as he had guessed?
He Xi thought to herself.
Isnt it good to let her be stronger and protect herself better?
You dont have to take such a risk.
Ming Sihan turned around and faced a pond with lotus leaves in full bloom. He stood by the pond, enjoying the breeze.
Of course, I have my own selfish motives. I want to bring Ruyue to the Seven Saint Continent. If I dont transfer my cultivation base to her, I wont be able to bring her to the Seven Saint Continent.
The Seven Saint Continent is very dangerous!
l know, but if I leave her here, Im afraid that Ruyue will have already be someone elses woman by the time I return.
After all, Ruyue was charming and easily attracted mens attention.
He had to stay by Ruyues side and destroy all the rotten peach blossoms.
Ruyue was his.
Alright, I knew it. Its exactly as I guessed.
He Xi looked relieved. This was all within his expectations.
Since ancient times, heroes could not resist beauties.
Therefore, Ming Sihans weakness was MO Ruyue.
In this life, Ming Sihan had fallen into MO Ruyues hands. So dont mention the matter of cultivation in front of Ruyue.
Dont worry, 1 know.
He Xi rolled his eyes. He felt that Ming Sihan thought he was an idiot.
It was ridiculous.
After they finished talking, MO Ruyues dishes were almost ready.
He Xi loved to eat the food prepared by MO Ruyue. Every time she ate such delicious food, she would feel very happy.
As they were eating, they heard a subordinateing in to report.
Demon Venerable, the sect master of Xuanling Immortal Sect, Ling Shoumo, requests an audience.
Hearing that familiar name, everyone looked at each other.
MO Ruyues beautiful brows furrowed tightly.
This Ling Shoumo, he didnte early orte, but he came when she was eating. Wouldnt this make her lose her appetite?
What was Ling Shoumos purpose foring here this time?
You guys eat. Ill go take a look.
Ming Sihan got up and prepared to meet Ling Shoumo.
She really didnt even let him eat without worry.
This Ling Shoumo seemed to know how to pick the right time.
Master, Ill go with you.
MO Ruyue stood up and quickly followed Ming Sihan.
Anyway, when she heard that guys name, she no longer had the appetite to eat.
He came at the wrong time.
Outside, the two of them saw Ling Shoumo bathing in the sun. His white clothes fluttered in the wind.
His silhouette seemed to be coated with ayer of light, making it hazy.
Mo Ruyue paused.
Suddenly, a big hand grabbed her soft little hand.
Ming Sihan smiled at her and said,Im here. Dont be afraid.
Seeing the gentleness in the mans dark red eyes, MO Ruyue nodded her head and chose to believe the man in front of her.
When she came back to her senses, her face turned red and she urgently needed to find a ce to hide.
She was actually absent-minded.
It was all her masters fault for being too good-looking. Her dark red eyes were too alluring.
Her palms were sweating and she was a little nervous.
Ling Shoumos gaze fell on MO Ruyue, and finally on her interlocked fingers.
He suddenly felt ufortable.
She wanted to separate her hands that were interlocked with each other.
She seemed to be living very well here.
Yo, what a rare guest. Why does Master Xuanling have the time toe to the Demon World? If youre here for me, then you should go back. I wont go back with you.
MO Ruyue asked herself to talk to divert her attention so that her thoughts would not be on Ming Sihan.
The sharp voice was filled with mockery.
Ling Shoumo merely looked at MO Ruyue and said nothing.
She was very bold.
He was like apletely different person from when he was in Xuanling Immortal Sect!
Maybe it was because Ming Sihan was behind her that she was so bold.
Ling Shoumos mood became veryplicated..
Chapter 835 - 835: Reflection
Chapter 835 - 835: Reflection
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ling Shoumo, if you have something to say, just say it. If youre here to find trouble, dont me me for being rude to you.
Ming Sihans tone wasnt friendly. His pupils shrank as he stared coldly at the man in front of him.
Hearing Ming Sihans voice, Ling Shoumo finally looked at him, as if he had just noticed Ming Sihan.
Because from the beginning, his eyes were fixed on MO Ruyue.
Her smile was as beautiful as a flower. The smile on her face would not lie.
She was living very well here.
l came here to talk to you about something.
This time, he was not here for MO Ruyue, but for the Blood Moon.
The immortal sects and the demon world needed to join forces to resist the evil.
You still have something to discuss with me? Ming Sihanughed coldly.
You really think too highly of me.
One had to know that the immortal sect and the demon world had never had any precedent for discussing matters before.
Whenever they met, it was either apetition or a fight.
There was almost no cohesion between the immortal sects and the demon world.
Since ancient times, the Demon Realm and the immortal sects were almost two opposing forces. They both regarded each other as a thorn in their side.
There had never been any cooperation.
Everyone looked down on each other.
Its about the Blood Moon. This matter concerns the fate of the world and is no small matter. We can put aside the grudge between the immortal sect and the demon world for the time being and ovee the difficulties together to eliminate the evil spirit!
Ling Shoumo said seriously.
He came with sincerity.
He knew that he couldnt get rid of the evil spirit by relying on his own strength and the strength of the immortal sect. He needed more forces to join in.
It would be best if the Demon Realm joined in.
This way, they would have more power to fight against the demons.
MO Ruyue did not expect this man toe here for the Blood Moon.
He was a little surprised.
He finally knew that he had to get down to business.
Master, why dont you talk to him here? she asked softly.
She did not want to participate in such a big matter. It was useless even if she participated because her strength was not as good as her master. If her master could not solve it, she would also have a hard time.
No need. Its better if you stay here.
Ming Sihan said meaningfully and held MO Ruyues hand even tighter.
Mo Ruyue looked at Ming Sihan and then at Ling Shoumo.
He hoped that she wouldnt cause any trouble here.
Tell me, what ns does your sect have?
Ming Sihan nodded slightly and lowered his eyes, as if he didnt want to look at Ling Shoumo anymore.
Because she felt unlucky just by looking at him.
He was actually Ruyue!s former master.
Everyone, gather together. The Immortal Sect and the Demon Realm will temporarily put aside their past grudges
Ling Shoumo told him his n.
In fact, the Evil Demons had yet to truly appear. They did not know how strong the Evil Demons were or what kind of power they needed to deal with them.
However, ording to the records of the demons from 300 years ago, this world had sacrificed many elites to make it disappear forever.
The evil spirit that appeared now was a newborn evil spirit. It was not the same as the one from 300 years ago.
Three hundred years had passed.
As long as there were people around, the evil spirit would not disappear forever.
This was because these demons were formed from the various desires of humans.
300 years was enough to breed a demon.
Im done.
Ling Shoumo shut his mouth. He had said enough details.
Ming Sihan had a weird personality, and she really didnt know what he was thinking.
Its not impossible for the Demon Realm to temporarily put down their grievances with your immortal sects, but our Demon Realm will not listen to your immortal sects!
It was impossible for him topletely listen to the words of those people from the immortal sects.
He could only temporarily put aside his grudges.
As for the others, they would continue to do what they were supposed to do after the demons were eliminated.
Its already good enough that both of us can temporarily put aside our grudges. As for resisting the demons, I believe that everyone will do their best to resist the demons in order to survive. Ling Shoumo heaved a sigh of relief.
He had convinced Ming Sihan.
What he was afraid of was that Ming Sihan was colluding with the demons.
If that really happened, this world might really be hopeless.
Luckily, Ming Sihan didnt do that.
Other than that, do you have anything else to do? If theres nothing else, please go back. I still have to go back with my disciple to eat.
Ming Sihan ordered him to leave.
He held MO Ruyues hand.
He also knew that Ling Shoumo had noticed this a long time ago, but he did not show too much expression.
There was almost no emotion on his face.
He was like a paralyzed face.
Ruyue, are you doing well in the Demon Realm?
Ling Shoumo asked.
His gaze locked onto MO Ruyue.
Mo Ruyue replied without hesitation, Of course Im doing well in the Devil World. Its much better than Xuanling Immortal Sect. Dont try to persuade me to go back. Ill never go back.
Are you really not going back?
Ling Shoumo asked, unwilling to give up.
Ming Sihan replied unhappily, Youre not good to Ruyue, yet you want Ruyue to go back. You think too highly of yourself, dont you?
Who was this man regretting for now?
Disgusting!
My master is the best to me.
MO Ruyue raised her chin proudly.
Although Ming Sihan didnt treat her that well in the beginning, after being together for a long time, Ming Sihan treated her better and better.
Its fine as long as youre doing well here. Back then, perhaps I was really wrong.
Ling Shoumo said in a drawn-out tone.
He no longer insisted on bringing MO Ruyue back, but he did not want to say goodbye to her either.
Hopefully, there was still a long way to go in the future!
Only after losing it did one know that they had to find what they had lost.
Ling Shoumos words made MO Ruyue feel a little surprised. This man actually felt that she had done something wrong before.
What a rare thing.
He actually learned to reflect!
She thought that Ling Shoumo would insist on his own way and not think that he had done anything wrong.
Because this man had always thought that he was high and mighty and never felt that he had done anything wrong.
Therefore, when she heard that Ling Shoumo knew that he was wrong, she felt a little emotional.
But even so, she would not go back.
Im living well here. You dont have to worry about me.
MO Ruyue smiled and moved closer to Ming Sihan.
She used her actions to tell him that Ming Sihan was better than him.
As the saying went, there was no harm withoutparison.
As a disciple, MO Ruyue had been very aggrieved when she was in Xuanling Immortal Sect.
But here, she was like a treasure.
Hearing Mo Ruyues words, Ming Sihan felt a littleforted.
He didnt dote on this woman for nothing.
In the future, he would spoil this woman even more.
Ling Shoumo felt as if his heart was being held tightly by a nameless hand when he saw the intimate scene between a man and a woman in front of him.
Bursts of dull pain made it difficult for him to breathe.
He coughed twice as if he wanted to separate them.
However, the two of them did not separate. They were still close to each other.
Its gettingte. I have to leave.
Ling Shoumo said slowly. He did not want to see this scene again.
Before he left, he said,Ruyue, 1 wee you back anytime if you want to.
Before MO Ruyue could speak, Ming Sihan, who was beside her, scolded her, You should leave quickly. Ruyue wont go back.
Ruyue was living so well here, so why would she go back?
Was he being bullied?
Chapter 836 - 836: The happiest person in the world
Chapter 836 - 836: The happiest person in the world
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Hearing Ming Sihans unhappy voice, MO Ruyue was afraid that this man would take off her shoes and throw them at Ling Shoumo.
That scene was already in his mind.
Im talking to Ruyue, not you!
Ling Shoumo replied.
The atmosphere between the two of them suddenly became tense and full of gunpowder.
Ling Shoumo, are you looking for death?
Youre meddling in other peoples business!
As soon as their auras were released, gusts of cold wind instantly blew around them.
MO Ruyue looked at it and thought that it was not good.
When immortals fought, little ghosts would suffer.
She quickly stood up and said, You two should stop.
Dont drag her into this war.
The surrounding chilly wind instantly stopped following MO Ruyues words.
Ruyue, Ill be leaving first, Ling Shoumo said to MO Ruyue.
Lets go, lets go.
MO Ruyue waved her hand impatiently. This guy shouldnt have appeared here.
Ling Shoumo left on his flying sword and soon disappeared from MO Ruyues
After the man left, MO Ruyue felt the temperature around her drop.
The man beside her was unhappy.
Master
Humph!
Ming Sihan snorted and turned to leave angrily.
He seemed to be angry with MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyues lips twitched. She felt very innocent.
It was just a fight. How could he offend his master?
She wasnt siding with Ling Shoumo.
She quickly followed the angry man.
Master, what are you unhappy about?
MO Ruyue followed beside Ming Sihan and raised her head slightly to look at the man in front of her.
How should she coax a man when he was angry?
Forget it if she couldnt coax him. She wouldnt coax him anymore.
Master, if youre angry again, Ill go look for Ling Shoumo. MO Ruyue said helplessly.
The person this guy disliked the most was Ling Shoumo.
Ming Sihan grabbed MO Ruyues wrist and said wont allow you to go find him. If you go find him, I, I will kill him.
He spoke stubbornly, his eyes filled with killing intent.
Mo Ruyue was frightened by the murderous look in Ming Sihans eyes.
She believed that what this man said must be true.
Why should I look for him?
MO Ruyue asked in confusion.
Why did it feel like he could leave at any time in Masters eyes?
Are you really not going to look for him?
Why are you looking for him?
He asked you to go back. Dont you want to go back?
Actually, Ming Sihan was afraid that MO Ruyue would leave him.
In this world, demonic cultivators were not epted by the world.
Now that Ling Shoumo had asked Ruyue to return, would Ruyue give up on demonic cultivation and choose immortal cultivation?
Do I have to go back just because he wants me to? Master, Im now a person of the Demon Realm, your disciple. Could it be that you also allow me to leave the Demon Realm?
MO Ruyue looked at the man in front of her seriously.
Why didnt this man believe her?
l naturally wont allow you to leave the Demon Realm. If you leave the Demon Realm, 1 will find you no matter where you go!
Ming Sihan snorted.
l dont have to leave the Demon Realm. This ce is quite good. Why should I leave the Demon Realm?
MO Ruyues face was serious and her eyes were firm.
Ming Sihan thought to himself that maybe he was too sensitive.
Ruyue had already said that she wouldnt leave.
Between Ling Shoumo and me, who do you think is better?
The damned desire to win and lose made him want to know MO Ruyues answer.
He did not want to know the answers of the others, but he cared about Ruyues answer the most.
Theres noparison. MO Ruyue shook her head. l cantpare. Do you think I cantpare to him?
Ming Sihan asked and frowned.
Was he that weak?
She felt a little stifled.
No, I just feel that he doesnt deserve to bepared to you. In my heart,
Master will always be the best.
MO Ruyue gave Ming Sihan a thumbs up.
Ming Sihans expression softened, but he still didnt look happy.
Then, MO Ruyue continued, Master, in my heart, youre a dragon among men, a red rabbit among horses, a star in the sky, and a stabilizing needle in the sea. As for Ling Shoumo, in my heart, hes just a lump of mud. How can mudpare to Master?
Using him topare with Master is simply insulting Master.
MO Ruyue said seriously.
As expected, after being ttered by MO Ruyue, Ming Sihan felt happy.
Although youre right, dont mention that man in front of me in the future.
l hate Ling Shoumo.
Hearing Ming Sihans words, MO Ruyue hurriedly nodded and said,Master, not only do you hate him, I also hate that guy.
Alright then, were not allowed to mention that guy in the future.
Yes, lets not talk about that guy.
MO Ruyue nodded and spoke solemnly.
Ming Sihan suddenly thought of something and said,Oh right, I have to go outter. Wait here for me toe back.
Alright, master. You can go out in peace. Ill wait for you in the Demon
Realm.
MO Ruyue nodded hurriedly.
He lowered his eyes and a hint of excitement shed in his eyes. He could finally sneak out to y.
When her master was still around, she had to learn the Neb Sword Technique and Sword Kinesis Flight every day.
All kinds of array formations and forbidden techniques, he was about to go crazy from learning them.
If she had been so serious and hardworking in school, wouldnt she have just randomly filled in the name of Beida Blue Bird?
She was a good student here.
They had to learn. The teaching here was one-on-one.
A teacher stared at a student.
Every day when she was cooking, it was time for her to ck off.
Therefore, she really liked to cook recently.
Dont think about cking off. When Ie back, Ill have to test you. If you forget anything, Ill punish you.
Ming Sihan seemed to have seen through MO Ruyues thoughts and said thoughtfully.
MO Ruyues mouth twitched. This
Annoying!
However, he still said respectfully,Master, you can leave without worry. I will definitely study hard and improve every day.
It should be fine to sneak out for a day or two.
Learning was supposed to be a bnce between work and rest. After Ming Sihan left, MO Ruyue prepared to take Li Zeyan out to y.
Zeyan, lets go. Lets go out and y with sister today.
MO Ruyue said with interest, a smile in her eyes.
He was as excited as if he had been injected with chicken blood.
Li Zeyan raised his head from his book and narrowed his eyes. He looked at MO Ruyue, who was smiling brightly, and I havent finished reading this medical book.
Uh Do you want to read a medical book?
Yes, I have to work hard to learn medicine. What if I can use it one day? Of course, he hoped that he would never have to use it.
Mo Ruyue suddenly felt a little ashamed when she saw the child studying so seriously.
She should not disturb a child who wanted to study seriously.
Alright, MO Ruyue said immediately. Then you should read the medical books properly. Ill go get you a bowl of walnut chicken soup to nourish your brain.
It didnt matter if he didnt work hard, but he couldnt disturb those who wanted to work hard.
If he didnt work hard, he would be either stupid or bad.
Thus, MO Ruyue went to the kitchen to make chicken soup and even made a roast chicken for Li Zeyan.
Li Zeyan ate the chicken and drank the chicken soup. He felt that he was the happiest person in the world..
Chapter 837 - 837: Something Must Be Wrong
Chapter 837 - 837: Something Must Be Wrong
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
When He Xi came back from outside, she could smell the fragrance of the chicken from afar.
He didnt particrly like to eat this kind of thing, so he didnt crave it.
Ruyue, why are you here? Wheres Ah Ming?
He Xi walked in and touched her somewhat sensitive nose.
Master has gone out, and I dont know when hell be back. Is there anything you need, Divine Doctor He Xi?
MO Ruyue asked.
Ming Sihan didnt tell her where he was going this time.
Its nothing. Its just that its a little unbelievable that youre here without seeing him.
He Xi smiled. Who asked that guy to stick to MO Ruyue all the time?
They were almost inseparable.
Wherever MO Ruyue was, Ming Sihan was.
Master, Im not here. 1 have to go out and get some fresh air. 1 havent gone out to y for a long time.
MO Ruyue took a deep breath. She missed the days when she could y outside.
Go ahead. Go early ande back early.
He Xi warned.
He was afraid that MO Ruyue would forget toe back after having too much fun outside.
When Ming Sihan came back and didnt see this woman, he would probably eat her again.
l know, I know.
MO Ruyue walked out excitedly.
This time, she didnt need to ride a horse.
He directly rode a flying sword.
The novice driver was about to hit the road.
Outside, he saw Jing Xichen and Baili Xijian in red and blue.
Senior brothers, are you going out?
MO Ruyue asked with a smile as she stared at the two men in front of her.
Jing Xichen saw Ruyueing over and nodded with a serious expression. We have to make a trip to Dongli.
Just in time. Bring me along too.
Dont you need to learn anything else today?
As Jing Xichen spoke, he subconsciously nced in the direction of the Demon Pce.
During this period of time, the Demon Venerable had given them a ban.
He was not allowed to get close to Ruyue and affect her studies.
Hence, they did not dare to leave with Ruyue.
If the Demon Venerable found out, they would have to bear the consequences. No need. Master has gone out. I dont even know when he will be back.
So, Senior Brothers, can you take me to Dong Li? MO Ruyue looked at the two men expectantly.
Jing Xichen and Baili Xijian looked at each other.
Ruyue, its not that we dont want to take you to Dongli, but the Demon Lord has already given us a ban so that we cant affect your learning progress. Baili Xijian said slowly.
They would not take the initiative to look for Ruyue now, lest it affect Ruyues studies.
From the looks of it, the Demon Venerable was going to groom Ruyue to be the next Demon Venerables sessor.
They supported Ru Yue bing the Demon Venerable.
Because Ruyue was worth it.
MO Ruyue wanted to insist, but she didnt want to make things difficult for her two Senior Brothers.
At worst, she would just follow them secretly.
Alright then. Senior Brothers, you may go. Have a safe journey.
Yes, yes.
MO Ruyue stood where she was and watched her two Senior Brothers fly away on their flying swords.
After a while, just as he was about to follow them, MO Chengfeng appeared in his line of sight.
When MO Chengfeng saw MO Ruyue, his dark eyes seemed to have some light.
Ruyue.
He walked up and stared at the woman in front of him.
It had been a few days since he had seen Ruyue or spoken to her.
It wasnt that he didnt want to talk to Ruyue.
It was because of the ban.
He did not want to stop Ruyue from bing better and stronger.
Ruyue was bing more and more outstanding, and he seemed to be unable to catch up to her.
The distance between the two of them grew further and further.
Eldest Senior Brother, where are you going?
l didnt go anywhere. I just walked around.
MO Chengfeng said casually. Now that everyone was united against the demons, he had fewer things to manage.
When he had nothing to do, he would go into seclusion to cultivate.
It was just that he was at a bottleneck right now, and closed-door cultivation was no longer of much use.
He needed an opportunity.
As long as he had this opportunity, he might be able to reach a higher level.
What about you? Are you going out?
MO Chengfeng asked curiously. He did not know what Ruyue wanted to do.
MO Ruyue nodded. I want to go to Dongli with Second Senior Brother and Fourth Senior Brother, but they wont take me with them. So, Im going to follow them secretly.
Ill bring you there.
MO Chengfeng didnt think much and said directly.
Of course, MO Chengfeng had also received the Demon Lords order, but he still wanted to get close to Ruyue.
He knew that this was not beneficial to him.
MO Ruyue was pleasantly surprised. Really?
Of course, my Sword Kinesis Flight technique has also improved a lot these days. We can ride a sword together.
He had been consolidating his sword kinesis flying technique for the past few days.
Because he didnt want to be worse than Ru Yue.
Even if he couldnt be very powerful, he shouldnt be too far off.
The difference was too great. The distance between him and Ruyue was getting further and further.
Sooner orter, he would not be able to catch up.
In order not to let that daye, he had to work harder now.
Alright, I also want topete with you, senior brother. Letspete and see how much Ive improved.
MO Ruyues beautiful and tender face was beaming with a bright smile.
Her innocent appearance was like an innocent child.
There seemed to be specks of starlight in his eyes, shining brightly.
In MO Chengfengs eyes, Junior Sister Ruyue was adorable.
However, in MO Ruyues eyes, she felt that she was like a mature elder sister, sweet and salty.
Her personality was always changing.
It always gave people the feeling that their eyes lit up.
MO Ruyue only wanted to have apetition with MO Chengfeng as aparison.
Thus, the two of them summoned their swords and stepped on them, preparing to set off.
Ill say three, two, one, and then well start.
MO Ruyue turned her head to look at MO Chengfeng beside her. She saw MO Chengfeng holding a silver bone fracture fan in his hand. He was dressed in a green robe, and a ck ck iron sword was under his feet.
Senior Brother MO was elegant and handsome.
In modern times, he would at least be a popr young hunk.
Her looks were amazing.
Having seen the Demon Lords god-like appearance, she was almost immune to handsome men.
Alright.
Three. Two.
One.
Then, the two of them flew out. MO Chengfeng did not give way to MO Ruyue because he knew that Ruyue no longer needed him to give way to her.
He was afraid that he was no match for Ruyue.
In order to not be left behind by Ruyue, he had to do his best.
He had to exert all his strength to barely be on the same level as Ruyue. However, he did not know how much strength Ruyue had used.
Senior Brother, look, theres a bird!
As she was flying on her sword, MO Ruyue s gaze was suddenly attracted by a flock of birds in the distance.
She pointed at the dense flock of ck birds in the distance, her eyes revealing shock.
He had never seen so many birds before.
Then what happened up ahead? Why were there so many birds?
There must be something wrong with things.
MO Chengfeng also looked in the direction that MO Ruyue was pointing at. What he saw was indeed countless birds.
Senior Brother, should we go over and take a look?
Although MO Ruyue was asking, she already had an answer in her heart. She just wanted to go over and take a look..
Chapter 838 - 838: Demoness’ s Dressing
Chapter 838 - 838: Demoness s Dressing
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
We cant act rashly. Just watch from afar.
MO Chengfeng said cautiously.
They knew nothing about the flock of birds. The entire sky over there was filled with a dense flock of ck birds.
At this moment, MO Ruyue eximed, Good heavens, thats not a flock of birds, but a flock of bats!
They looked like birds from afar, but when they got closer, they realized that they were actually a group of bats.
The scene was quite spectacr. The entire sky was filled with bats.
The sunlight had long been blocked by the bats. They stood on the ground and could not see the sun.
Junior sister, be careful. There are strange things everywhere here.
MO Chengfeng descended.
They couldnt go any further. If they did, they would be attacked by the bats.
These bats seemed to be protecting something.
This made him think of demons.
Moreover, there was a ck abyss below these bats.
Countless bats rushed out of the abyss.
Mo Ruyuended on the edge of the cliff and looked at the abyss not far away. She could feel a breath rising from the bottom.
A very evil aura.
Senior Brother, could this be the ce where the demons were born? MO Ruyue said loudly.
As soon as she finished speaking, a few bats swooped down on her.
MO Ruyue was so frightened that she quickly used her sword to kill them all. She was too afraid of bats.
This thing carried a virus all over its body. One bite would kill someone.
MO Chengfengnded on the edge of the cliff.
His expression was solemn as he looked down at the abyss.
They couldnt see anything from where they were standing.
He could only see these bats.
Junior Sister, this ce is very strange. Why dont we leave?
MO Chengfeng didnt know what this ce was, but he also knew why these bats were gathered here.
This ce gave him a bad feeling. He just wanted to escape from this ce.
Yes.
MO Ruyue replied.
If Ming Sihan was still in the demon world, she would go back and report to the demon lord about the strange phenomenon.
However, his master was not in the Demon Realm.
The two of them left the abyss filled with bats.
When they arrived at Dongli, it was already night.
During this period of time, Dongli had a curfew, so it was quiet at night. There was no one on the streets.
The two of them went straight to meet Jing Xichen and Baili Xi.
After all, there was a base here, so they quickly found Baili Xi.
Senior Brother Baili, why are you alone? Where was Senior Brother Jing?
MO Ruyue asked curiously.
When Baili Xi saw MO Ruyue, he said,I didnt expect you to stille,
Staying in the Demon Realm is boring.
MO Ruyue whispered.
l was the one who brought Ruyue here, said MO Chengfeng. Eldest senior brother, this
Bai Lixi stared at MO Chengfeng with a crazy expression.
Did MO Chengfeng ignore the Demon Lords ban?
Sigh, I begged Eldest Senior Brother to bring me here. It has nothing to do with Eldest Senior Brother.
MO Ruyue hurriedly said.
She would never implicate others when she came out to y.
If anything happened, she would bear the responsibility herself.
Junior Brother Jing should be in the pce now. Baili Xi shook his head helplessly. Did something happen?
MO Ruvue asked.
Bai Lixis expression darkened. He looked out of the window, in the direction of the pce, and there was a hint of worry in the depths of his eyes.
Jing Yuge is dead.
Ah? MO Ruyue was shocked.
She knew that guy. She had met him once before. Anyway, he wasnt a good person. He was Jing Xichens biological brother.
In this world where twins were considered unlucky, both children would usually die.
However, it was not easy to have two children, so most people would choose one to live and the other to die.
Of the two brothers, Jing Yuge and Jing Xichen, Jing Xichen was the one who was sacrificed.
As the mother of the child, she naturally would not give up on either of them.
Therefore, Jing Xichen survived, even though he couldnt see the light of day.
At least he was alive.
What exactly happened?Mo Ruyue was very curious.
He remembered that Jing Yuge, Jing Xichens brother, was the son of the state preceptor. How could he have died? Was it an ident or homicide?
I dont know.
Baili Xijian shook his head. He had only heard of this news.
He didnt know much about the details.
This might be a good thing for Junior Brother Jing. MO Chengfeng, who was silent at the side, spoke.
If Jing Yuge died, then Jing Xichen could live openly.
Baili Xijian nodded and said,I think so too.
It wasnt that they didnt have sympathy for Jing Yuges death.
They were just thinking more about Jing Xichen. Who asked Jing Xichen to be their junior brother?
Then should we go over and help?
MO Ruyue was worried that Jing Xichen wouldnt be able to handle it alone.
That was why she was thinking about whether she should go over and help.
Its best not to. This is his own business, and he doesnt want us to interfere.
Baili Xi advised.
Because he had the same thoughts as Ruyue.
However, Jing Xichen stopped him in the end.
He said that it was his own business and he didnt want others to interfere.
Alright then, MO Ruyue said.
Ill respect Fourth Brothers choice.
Moreover, Fourth Brothers body had already recovered and his strength was not weak. Those ordinary people were not his match at all.
There was no need to worry too much.
At night, MO Ruyuey in bed, thinking about bats and the abyss.
Her intuition told her that many terrible things were going to happen next.
The next day, MO Chengfeng knocked on MO Ruyues door early in the morning.
Senior Brother, whats the matter? MO Ruyue opened the door and asked.
Ruyue, the weather outside is especially good today. Do you want to go out for a stroll?
Wait for me.
MO Ruyue nodded. She was going to go shopping today.
It had been too long since she had bought anything, and she was about to suffocate.
Alright, Ill wait for you in the backyard.
MO Chengfeng said.
As the front of the house was for receiving guests, he could only wait for Ruyue in the backyard.
MO Ruyue was wearing a violet dress with her hair tied up in a simple bun. Her beautiful face was radiant even without makeup.
The corners of her beautiful eyes were slightly upturned, and she was mesmerizing.
Her eyshes were long and spread out like a fan, casting a shadow under her eye sockets.
As soon as MO Ruyue stepped out of the door, a servant who was passing by couldnt help but say, Fairy! Fairy has descended to the mortal world!
Perhaps others would be very happy to hear this.
However, MO Ruyue was not happy.
She was clearly dressed as a demoness now. Since he said that she looked like a fairy, wasnt that an insult to her?
Could it be that she didnt put on makeup?
Only by putting on a seductive makeup on her face could she prove that she was a demoness and not a fairy?
Senior Brother MO!
MO Ruyue shouted and flew towards MO Chengfeng like a butterfly.
Nio Chengfeng was dressed in a green robe and had a silver crown on his head. He looked exceptionally beautiful under the sunlight.
Their eyes met. MO Chengfeng stared at MO Ruyue and forgot to blink.
Ruyue was exceptionally good-looking today.
Lets go.
MO Chengfeng said.
Alright.
MO Ruyue nodded happily, trying to suppress her excitement.
She was like a carnivore who had not eaten meat for a long time.
MO Chengfeng was a payment machine.
MO Chengfeng would spend money to buy anything that MO Ruyue liked..
Chapter 839 - 839: Bell Ringing
Chapter 839 - 839: Bell Ringing
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Senior Brother,e,e, use my money, use my money!
MO Ruyue scrambled to pay. How could she let MO Chengfeng pay for the things she bought?
It wasnt that she didnt have money.
However, she couldnt persuade MO Chengfeng at all. This guy just wanted to spend money for her.
MO Ruyue didnt dare to continue buying.
The things he bought were all thrown into the storage ring.
At this moment, a group of people suddenly gathered in front of them. It looked very lively.
MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng squeezed in as well.
Everyone can write down their blessings to the people around them. They can take turns and ce their blessings or wishes in this small sachet.
The boss was trying his best to promote his prayer sachet.
Is it really that effective?
It definitely works. This is something that has been blessed, and it doesnt charge you much.
A sachet is only five coins. Arent sachets usually only five yuan each?
When everyone heard what the boss said, they all felt that it made sense.
MO Ruyues interest was piqued when she heard that. She looked at MO Chengfeng beside her and said, Senior Brother, lets go and write.
Write what?
Wishes or blessings.
He wrote to the other party.
MO Chengfeng looked deeply at MO Ruyue and slowly said,Alright then. Perhaps he could take this opportunity to express his feelings to Ruyue.
MO Ruyue asked for two sachets in one go. One was for the Demon Venerable and the other was for MO Chengfeng.
I hope that Master will be healthy, blessed, and have a sessor. After writing this, he stuffed the note into the sachet.
Then, MO Ruyue wrote a congrattory note for MO Chengfeng.
l hope that Eldest Senior Brothers work will be smooth, that his career will be sessful, that his luck will be high, and that his future will be bright.
After writing, MO Ruyue felt that she was too considerate.
She was simply a caring little cotton-padded jacket in the world.
There shouldnt be a second person in the world who was so considerate, right?
MO Ruyue stuffed the note into the sachet.
Senior Brother, this sachet is for you.
As she spoke, she gave the sachet in her hand to MO Chengfeng.
Thank you, Ruyue.
MO Chengfeng tightly held the sachet that Ruyue had given him.
He also handed over the sachet in his hand and said with a solemn expression,Everything I want to say to you is in this sachet.
Let me open it and take a look.
Mo Ruyue was about to open it but was stopped by MO Chengfeng.
MO Chengfengs face turned slightly red as he said,Well open it when we get back.
Alright, Senior Brother, what did you write?
She couldnt open it right away, so MO Ruyue was immediately curious.
What was written inside?
So mysterious!
Moreover, Shixiongs expression was a little strange.
Youll know when we get back.
Alright, lets go back now.
In order to know this secret, MO Ruyue stopped shopping.
Actually, they were almost done shopping.
Mo Chengfeng did not know what to say.
Then lets go back.
MO Ruyue went back to her room and opened the sachet. The note inside said,The moon on the sea is the moon in the sky, and the person in front of me is my sweetheart.
This, this, this is a love letter?
She thought that it would be some strange blessing.
MO Ruyue was at a loss when she saw the note.
MO Ruyue would never have thought that she would receive a confession note from MO Chengfeng.
This, what should he do?
ording to normal people, if they didnt like someone, they would reject them directly, so as not to leave them hanging.
ording to a normal person, he would not reject or ept it. He would keep others in suspense and ept the good things that others did for him.
For the entire night, the two of them could not sleep.
MO Ruyue was thinking about how to reject MO Chengfeng so that he would not feel embarrassed.
Meanwhile, MO Chengfeng was worried that Ruyue would know his feelings.
The next day, MO Ruyue took the sachet that MO Chengfeng had given her and went to find him.
Some things had to be made clear.
When MO Chengfeng saw MO Ruyueing over, his heart was in his throat.
Senior Brother
MO Ruyue shouted, but the words of rejection were stuck in her throat.
He had prepared a lot of excuses, but after seeing MO Chengfeng, he felt that there was no need to say so much. It might be better to be more direct.
Ruyue
MO Chengfeng shouted, his eyes reflecting MO Ruyues figure.
She was still nervous.
He had never been so nervous before.
Shixiong, Ill return this to you. Ive always respected Shixiong like a big brother.
MO Ruyue returned the sachet to MO Chengfeng.
Then, he continued, Ill return the things in the storage ring to you.
Of course, I can also pay you back directly.
After all, the things she bought were all things she liked.
There was also some rouge powder that would probably be useless even if he returned it to MO Chengfeng.
After saying that, MO Ruyue took out a gold ingot from her storage ring. This gold ingot was enough to pay for the things she bought yesterday.
There might still be a lot left.
Mo Chengfeng had already expected this oue.
However, he was somewhat looking forward to it.
Now, she finally woke up from her dream.
He didnt ept MO Ruyues sachet and gold. Instead, he smiled helplessly and said,Ruyue, keep this sachet well. Money is just a worldly possession to Senior Brother. Its worth it to use money to buy happiness.
So you dont have to pay me back. In the past, Shixiong loved you but didnt dare to say it out loud.
Now, although you have rejected me and I am sad, I have no regrets. At least he had bravely taken the first step.
Ruyue was such an outstanding girl. She would shine wherever she went. This result, Senior Brother has already expected it.
MO Chengfeng epted the result frankly and did not nder the girl who rejected him.
Because he was not the kind of man who would nder a girl just because she rejected him.
He would only wish her well in his heart.
This wasnt because he was great, but because he really liked her. That was why he had such an open-minded mind.
I am lucky to get it, but I am destined to lose it.
Perhaps the fate between him and Ruyue was too shallow.
Seeing MO Chengfeng ept it so openly, MO Ruyue did not feel guilty anymore.
It turned out that rejecting someone would make one feel guilty.
She didnt know if other people had the same thoughts as her.
In the end, the sachet was left by MO Ruyues side.
Ruyue, since we cant be a loving couple, why dont we be siblings with the same surname?
Coincidentally, their surnames were the same. Wouldnt it be better to be each others family?
Is it really possible?
MO Ruyue thought for a moment and felt that this was not a bad idea.
He wouldnt have to feel awkward in the future.
As long as Ruyue agrees, well be siblings with the same surname.
l think so.
MO Ruyue agreed. There seemed to be nothing wrong with being siblings with the same surname.
At this moment, the sound of a bell rang outside.
In Dongli, the sound of the bell was a warning of danger.
Or when someone died in the pce, the bell would ring.
Everyone ran outside and looked in the direction of the bell tower.
They didnt know what had happened.
It wasnt until Jing Xichen returned that he found out that the Empress had died.
The Imperial Advisors entire family was executed!
Chapter 840 - 840: Strange Illness
Chapter 840 - 840: Strange Illness
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Jing Yuge and the Empress were found out.
Jing Xichen said lightly. His face was expressionless, as if this matter had nothing to do with him.
It had nothing to do with him.
Jing Yuge was killed, and the queens scandal was exposed, so she took poison and died.
The Emperor used the Imperial Tutors actions to cause chaos and executed the Imperial Tutors entire family.
The Emperor would never let outsiders know about such a scandal in the depths of the pce.
However, everyone could not help but guess that there must be some connection between the execution of the Imperial Advisors family and the death of the Empress.
Baili Xi nced at Jing Xichen and said, Should we stop the Imperial Preceptors family from being executed?
After all, the Imperial Advisors residence was Jing Xichens home.
Moreover, there were nearly 200 people in the Imperial Advisors residence.
Would Jing Xichen leave so many people to die?
Heh, theres no need to stop me. Theres no one there who cares about me. I wont care about the others either.
It was fine to say that he was cold-hearted or heartless.
Not many people in the Imperial Advisors residence treated him well.
And those who were good to him were no longer alive.
Moreover, Jing Yuge deserved to die.
He actually colluded with the Empress. He was really bold.
Jing Yuge and the Empress were truly in love, but Jing Yuge had many women in his backyard.
Its just that I have to go to the imperial prison tonight.
Ill go with you.
Baili Xijian opened his mouth. He knew that Jing Xichen had suffered too much in the past and had no feelings for the people in the Imperial Advisors Residence.
Therefore, now that the Imperial Advisors Residence was in trouble, they naturally would not lend a helping hand.
If theres a need, I can apany you to the imperial prison.
MO Ruyue volunteered. She was most interested in breaking into the imperial prison.
Thank you, Junior Sister, but it will be fine with Second Senior Brother. A hint of softness shed across Jing Xichens eyes.
It was good to have these people who were not family but were more like family by his side.
It made him feel warm.
The imperial prison was still rather dangerous, so there was no need for Junior Sister Ruyue to go there.
MO Ruyue snorted, and her eyes met Baili Xijian and Jing Xichen.
These two fellows, one blue and one red, had some unspeakable secret. The rtionship between the two was not shallow. It really made him curious.
At night, Baili Xijian apanied Jing Xichen to the imperial prison. Jing Xichen sessfully found the ce where the man was imprisoned.
Senior Brother, just wait for me outside.
Yes.
Baili Xijian responded and watched Jing Xichen enter.
Jing Xichen came in front of the man and watched as the high and mighty man was reduced to a prisoner.
There was no sadness in his heart, only joy.
Who are you?
The man opened his eyes and asked hurriedly.
My good father, you dont know who 1 am? Jing Xichen smiled.
Yu Ge! t
The man eximed. Wasnt Yu Ge already dead?
Why was he standing outside the cell?
Listen carefully. Im not Jing Yuge, Im Jing Xichen! Jing Xichen sneered.
This man only found out that he had another son now.
You
The man was speechless.
He was stunned.
You didnt expect this, did you? Youve been divining your life, but you didnt even know when you would die? He didnt know when the Jing family would fall.
Jing Xichen said sarcastically.
The man closed his eyes. Youre indeed an ominous person. You should die early. The earlier you die, the more prosperous the Jing family will be. Its because of you that the Jing family is suffering from this misfortune!
He should have investigated carefully and not let Jing Xichen live.
The Jing family had be like this because of the existence of an ominous person like Jing Xichen!
The man med everything on Jing Xichen.
Jing Xichen had never expected this man to still think that the Jing family was where they were today because he was still alive.
Therefore, in this mans heart, he, Jing Xichen, was an extra person!
Someone who should not have survived.
Hahaha
Jing Xichenughed with a hint of destion.
What right do you have tough? What face do you have tough? You should die. The Jing family can only survive if you die.
The man opened his eyes and stood up, his face filled with anger.
It turned out that everything happened because of this guy.
Jing Xichen stopped smiling and his heart turned extremely cold. I finally know why Im so unlucky. Its because the Jing family is still alive that Im so unlucky. My life will only be lucky if everyone in the Jing family dies. However, it will be soon. You will die soon, and my good days will soone.
Jing Xichen didnt have the heart to do so.
This man wanted him dead, so why would he want this man alive?
They both hoped for each other to die.
Jing Xichen, do you still have a conscience? You live for yourself and ignore the lives of so many people. Youre a disgrace. The man shouted at Jing Xichen.
The one who deserved to die was Jing Xichen.
Jing Xichen was about to leave when he heard the mans voice. He threw two copper coins at the man and said,Why dont you calcte it yourself? Do you deserve to die or do I deserve to die?
The fact that he could live until now already showed that he was not destined to die.
With that, Jing Xichen strode out of the imperial prison.
Are you alright?
When Baili Xi saw Jing Xichene out, he realized that the man didnt look too good.
Something bad must have happened inside, right?
Do you have time to drink with me?
Of course, Im very free.
Baili Xi nodded and turned around to nce at the prison.
What did that man say to make Jing Xichen so unhappy? He was about to die, yet he still didnt want others to be happy?
Then lets go.
As he spoke, Jing Xichen had already walked out.
MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng stayed in Dongli for two days before they prepared to return.
MO Ruyue was mainly afraid that the Demon Venerable would find out that she was not in the Demon Realm when he returned.
At that time, he would definitely be punished.
Meanwhile, Baili Xijian stayed with Jing Xichen in Dongli Country, as there was business here that needed to be taken care of.
When MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng were halfway there, they discovered that several viges were on fire.
Brother, there seems to be something wrong down there. Should we go and take a look?Mo Ruyue tilted her head and asked.
It was normal for one vige to have a fire. It was a coincidence for two viges to have a fire. It was a little strange for three or four viges to have a fire.
MO Chengfeng nodded and said, Lets go down and take a look.
Hence, the twonded in a vige and found that the houses and bodies of the vigers were burned.
Crying, shouting, and moaning in pain were endless.
MO Ruyue stopped a middle-aged man and asked what happened in this vige? Why did they burn the corpses and the houses? It was not normal to burn a dead body here.
This ce was a burial ground. Burning the corpses to death was disrespectful to the dead.
The middle-aged man sized up MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng from head to toe. With a haggard face, he said,These people who were burned to death were all infected with a strange disease. Only by burning the dead and the house would they not be infected by the strange disease!
Strange illness?
MO Ruyues expression turned grave.. Could it be some serious infectious gue?
Chapter 841 - 841: Grasshoppers in the Same Boat
Chapter 841 - 841: Grasshoppers in the Same Boat
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Yes, this strange disease came very suddenly, and its especially easy to be infected.
The healthy young people here have all run away, leaving only us who are too old to run.
You guys should leave quickly to avoid being infected.
The middle-aged man turned around and left as he spoke.
It wasnt that they didnt want to leave, but they were too old to walk.
He could only stay here.
MO Ruyue and MO Chengfeng looked at each other.
Brother, do you think this matter has something to do with the demons?
Its very possible!
MO Chengfeng nodded.
Then, the two of them went to check on the other viges and found that the other viges were in the same situation.
The doctors were helpless. They took the money and ran away, not caring about the lives of the vigers.
It wasnt that they didnt want to care, but they couldnt tell what kind of illness it was.
In order not to catch the disease, he had to escape quickly.
MO Chengfeng looked at the situation and said to MO Ruyue,Ruyue, go back to the Devil World alone first, then bring He Xi here. Senior Brother will help them here!
This was not an ordinary illness. It was probably rted to demons. Ordinary doctors could not do anything about it at all. They could only ask He Xi toe here to take a look.
There might still be a chance.
If the demons brought all kinds of demons and ghosts, she could still fight them. She could fight anyway.
However, the evil spirits brought about illnesses, and she was unable to resist these things.
Brother, this ce is very dangerous. Why dont we go back to the Demon Realm together?
MO Ruyue advised. She could not let MO Chengfeng fall into danger.
What if MO Chengfeng was also infected?
Ruyue, dont worry. Brother will protect himself well.
MO Chengfeng gave MO Ruyue aforting smile.
He had to stay here and observe the patients changes so that he could give He Xi a detailed description.
MO Ruyue pursed her lips. Alright then. You must be careful.
Yes, 1 will.
MO Chengfeng nodded and watched MO Ruyue leave.
This parting was almost a farewell.
Mo Ruyue didnt dare to dy for even a moment on the way back to the Demon Realm.
He Xi, something bad has happened!
Mo Ruyue shouted at the top of her lungs.
He Xi had just eaten half of the fish when he heard MO Ruyues voice. A fish bone stuck in his throat.
He quickly removed the fishbone from his throat.
MO Ruyue did not know that He Xi was eating fish. She was stunned.
Whats wrong, Ruyue?
He Xi straightened his expression, pinched his throat with his right hand, and coughed lightly.
His gaze fell on MO Ruyue.
Could it be that something important had happened?
MO Ruyue came back to her senses and said nervously,Something bad happened. When my brother and I came back, we found that many vigers had a strange disease. Once they were infected, they would die.
The situation was very serious. If this disease spread, there would be countless casualties.
Therefore, he had to quickly think of a way to control it.
The first person she thought of was He Xi.
After all, He Xi was a divine doctor and had seen a lot of things.
Perhaps there would be a way.
If you contract a strange disease, cant you find a doctor?
He Xi raised his eyebrows slightly. To be honest, he never treated others easily.
He did not learn medicine to benefit the people, but for his own interest.
asionally, he would treat the people.
At other times, he would not treat the people.
He only liked challenging cases.
He didnt want to see a normal minor illness at all.
And who is your brother?
When did Ruyue have an older brother? Why didnt he know about it?
My brother is Senior Brother Mo. Were siblings now. The doctors you mentioned were all helpless. some ran away, and some died.
Mo Ruyue panted.
She came back early, so she didnt see Ming Sihan.
When He Xi heard this, her eyes revealed a strong interest, and she said,Are you telling the truth?
How can I lie about such things? Moreover, Senior Brother is still there. We have to hurry over.
Alright, alright. Then lets hurry over together.
He Xi responded, took some things, and left the Devil World with MO Ruyue.
After Li Zeyan and Hillghost came back from picking herbs in the mountains, they found that He Xi had disappeared.
Eh, Master, why is it gone? Squeak
Hillghost didnt know either.
The two of them were now in the same boat.
They helped each other and supported each other.
l think I can smell my sister in the air.
Li Zeyan said thoughtfully.
He felt that he missed his sister too much, so he was hallucinating.
Squeak
Hillghost indicated that it indeed had Masters aura. Master had juste over.
MO Ruyue brought He Xi to Shang Yuan Vige. After half a day, four houses had been burned down.
He had burned down two houses earlier.
In other words, after she left, at least two more people died.
MO Ruyue was so frightened that she quickly covered her mouth and nose with her handkerchief.
Although it didnt seem to be of much use, it could at least give him some psychologicalfort.
This ce was too dangerous.
This is it. Im going to look for my brother.
MO Ruyue hurriedly went to look for MO Chengfeng.
He Xi nodded. You go ahead. Ill take a look at the patients condition.
Therefore, He Xi put on the sheepskin gloves very skillfully and prepared to start his work.
MO Ruyue found MO Chengfeng and saw him and a few other men piling the corpses together with a lot of firewood around them.
When MO Chengfeng saw MO Ruyueing over, he hurriedly waved his hand to signal her not to go over.
The corpse was quickly devoured by the fire, and the air was filled with an unpleasant smell.
A normal person would not be able to see that scene, so MO Ruyue had no choice but to turn her back to the fire.
The vige here belonged to Nanping Country, but the imperial court did not send anyone to manage it.
It was as if they were letting these people fend for themselves.
MO Chengfeng did not feel very good at the moment. He had only helped the vigers carry a few corpses. His hands had not touched the corpses, but he felt dizzy.
Moreover, his body was heating up, and it was difficult for him to breathe.
The man who had been carrying the body with him had fallen.
MO Ruyue walked towards MO Chengfeng, but MO Chengfeng shook his head and said loudly,Ruyue, donte over. 1 might
He believed that Ruyue would understand even if he did not say the rest.
How could it be so fast?
Her eyes widened in disbelief.
However, he couldnt just watch MO Chengfeng die!
Her heart was exceptionally anxious.
After some thought, MO Ruyue quickly turned around and went to look for He Xi.
At this moment, she could no longer care about the lives of others. She only wanted MO Chengfeng to live.
He Xi, quick, go and see my brother. He seems to be infected. MO Ruyue said as she dragged He Xi towards MO Chengfeng.
He Xi could only follow MO Ruyue.
When they passed by, MO Chengfeng fell powerlessly onto the haystack.
He panted and was sweating all over. Just stand here and dont go near them. l dont want to see both of you fall.
He Xi said calmly.
This kind of thing had to be dealt with calmly. The more it was like this, the more one had to remain calm.
Mo Chengfeng had just fallen, and MO Ruyue could not fall again.
He only had one pair of hands, and he couldnt keep busy with two people..
Chapter 842 - 842: Inappropriate Thoughts
Chapter 842 - 842: Inappropriate Thoughts
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
He Xi, you must save my brother.
MO Ruyue was so anxious that she could only stomp her feet. No one could empathize with her anxiety.
Only when something like this happened to the person he cared about could he understand.
Dont worry, I will definitely save MO Chengfeng.
Even if MO Ruyue didnt say anything, he would have saved her.
After all, MO Chengfeng was from the Devil World.
She was also one of Ming Sihans more important subordinates.
MO Chengfeng gradually lost his consciousness, as if a huge ck hand was pulling him into a bottomless abyss.
He wanted to struggle, but it was useless.
There were still countless hands in the bottomless abyss.
It pulled him in bit by bit.
There were dozens of people in the vige. In two days, almost two-thirds of the people had lost their lives.
After a busy night, He Xi finally stabilized MO Chengfengs life.
However, the men who had moved the corpses with MO Chengfeng were already dead.
One vige, two viges.
One city, two cities.
One country, two countries.
The entire world was in a foul atmosphere.
There were more or less people in the immortal sects who were infected.
Because the mortality rate was extremely high, once infected, they would be chased out of the immortal sect.
Therefore, those people from the immortal sects all shut their doors and did note out.
He Xi, how is my brother?
Ruyue wiped her tears and looked worriedly at MO Chengfeng who was lying on the bed.
He Xi shook his head and said,I can only stabilize his life now and ensure that his internal organs are not eroded.
It would be very difficult to save MO Chengfeng.
What kind of illness was this? He actually couldnt tell.
This was because they had never encountered it before. Moreover, as long as they were infected, they would die very quickly.
He had no idea how to deal with this illness.
He probably wouldnt be able to keep his title as a divine doctor anymore.
You dont have a solution?
MO Ruyue felt a trace of despair. She could not watch MO Chengfeng die like this.
There must be another way.
Only the two of them were left in the vige, along with MO Chengfeng, who was on the verge of death.
The others were either dead or had already left the vige.
Actually, it was useless to leave this vige.
This happened in other ces, even in the entire country and the entire world.
No one was able to do anything about this.
MO Ruyue went to other ces to check and found that the situation was the same.
Only a ghost would believe this if it wasnt done by the demons.
Where are those damned demons?
He Xi, are we going to stay here forever? Or should we return to the Demon Realm first?
After Ruyue returned, she could not help but ask.
At this moment, they were in the homes of themoners.
It turned out that the people who lived here had long escaped.
That was why the house was not burned down.
Its better to continue staying here. It wont be good if we bring the disease back to the Demon Realm.
He Xi frowned and took out some herbs from his storage ring.
He nned to use these herbs to develop a prescription and see the effects.
To be honest, he had already treated MO Chengfeng as ab rat.
MO Chengfeng might be the only person who was infected and could still live for so long.
It was because he had used the Life-prolonging Needle to extend MO
Chengfengs life.
If he didnt have the Life Prolonging Needle, MO Chengfeng would really be finished.
Hearing He Xis words, MO Ruyue also felt that it made sense.
However, her master should have returned to the demon world by now. She would definitely be very worried if she did not see her at that time.
She just wanted to tell her master that she was safe.
He told his master not to worry.
demon world
Ming Sihan already knew about what was happening in the outside world, so the first thing he did when he returned was to prevent people from the demon world from entering and leaving freely.
This was also for everyones safety.
He went to look for Ruyue and realized that she was not in the Demon Pce at all.
Moreover, He Xi wasnt there either.
Even MO Chengfeng and the others werent around.
Where did these guys go?
Ming Sihans face was slightly pale and his expression was solemn.
He did see Li Zeyan and Hillghost, but they didnt know anything.
He was like a block of wood.
Ruyue really ignored his words. She told her not to run outside, but she ran outside.
He felt a sharp pain in his chest as if ants were gnawing on him. He lowered his head.
His ck clothes were soaked. His wound must have opened again.
After thinking about it, Ming Sihan decided to treat his wound first.
At the very least, he could deal with it simply.
He definitely couldnt take this set of clothes anymore. The smell of blood was heavy.
Ming Sihan changed his clothes and treated his wounds before leaving the demon world to look for MO Ruyue.
Finally, he found MO Ruyue in a small vige.
Seeing that familiar face, Ming Sihan finally heaved a sigh of relief.
Master.
The moment she saw Ming Sihan, MO Ruyue finally couldnt help but cry.
She ran towards Ming Sihan with tears in her eyes. This scene made Ming Sihans anger dissipate.
Whats wrong?
Ming Sihan wiped away the tears on MO Ruyues face.
Was this girl bullied by someone?
His dark red eyes were filled with heartache.
He pulled MO Ruyue into his arms and held her in his arms. Ming Sihan felt as if his heart had been filled.
My brother hasnt woken up yet.
Your brother?
Yes, Nio Chengfeng, Senior Brother Mo.
MO Ruyue sniffed.
She lifted her head from Ming Sihans arms and blinked her teary eyes.
What happened to him?
My brother is infected.
MO Ruyue said sadly. It had been three days, but MO Chengfeng showed no signs of waking up.
Ming Sihan held MO Ruyue in his arms and endured the pain in his chest. He said, Dont worry, hell be fine.
Although he did not know how MO Chengfeng became Ruyues brother, it was a good thing for him.
In the future, he would not have to worry about MO Chengfeng having any improper thoughts about Ruyue.
The only bad thing was that he might be MO Chengfengs brother-inw?
Why didnt MO Chengfeng be Ruyues younger brother?
Hearing Ming Sihans voice, MO Ruyue felt inexplicably at ease.
She did not dare to close her eyes for the past three days and three nights.
She was afraid that she would hear bad news the moment she woke up.
His eyes were wide open and bloodshot.
MO Ruyue did not like to cry.
Back then, when she was mocked and humiliated, she never shed a tear.
Only when the people they cared about were in danger would they be unable to hold back their tears.
If someone could remain calm when their loved ones were in danger, they would be a ruthless person.
Obviously, she was not that ruthless.
MO Chengfeng was now her brother.
He could be considered her family.
He Xi is also here, right?
Ming Sihan asked. Seeing the person in his arms suddenly leave, he felt a little disappointed.
However, he knew that now was not the time to flirt.
Yes, He Xi has always been thinking of ways to save my brother. Although he hasnt thought of any good way yet, he still continues to work hard and hasnt given up.
He Xi hadnt slept or rested for the past few days.
The two of them did not dare to sleep easily, afraid that MO Chengfeng would be gone once they woke up.
MO Ruyue brought Ming Sihan to the room to see He Xi and MO Chengfeng.
When He Xi saw Ming Sihan, she said,Youre back?
Chapter 843 - 843: What Is Conscience? Edible?
Chapter 843 - 843: What Is Conscience? Edible?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Yes.
Ming Sihan nodded and walked towards the bed.
Looking at MO Chengfeng on the bed, he said, Is there a way to save him?
There must be a way, but we havent found it yet.
If you need anything, just let me know.
Just because Ruyue cared about MO Chengfeng and did not want him to die, he would not let MO Chengfeng die.
No matter what method she thought of, she had to save this man.
Yes, 1 know, but this illness is too strange, It definitely has something to do with demons.
He Xi said slowly. If it was a natural disease, it would not be a problem to deal with it.
Everything in the world was mutually reinforcing.
Only this kind of illness that defied nature would make him helpless for a moment.
At present, there was no good solution.
Fortunately, MO Chengfeng is a cultivator and can maintain it for so long. If it was an ordinary person, Im afraid they wouldnt be able to maintain it for so long.
He Xi sighed.
This could be considered a blessing in disguise,
Cultivators had better physiques than ordinary people. They had cultivation in their bodies, so their cultivation would more or less protect their bodies. Ruyue, you havent rested for a long time. Go and rest first. Im here. He Xi looked at MO Ruyue with concern and asked her to go rest.
Ming Sihan looked at MO Ruyues face and felt that she was a little pale.
You should go and rest. He Xi and I will be watching over here. MO Chengfeng will be fine.
The two of them urged MO Ruyue, and she nodded. Then, she went to her room to sleep.
Shey on the bed and fell asleep as soon as she closed her eyes.
She was really too sleepy.
Ming Sihan and He Xi were outside.
He looked at MO Chengfeng lying on the bed. MO Chengfengs face was pale and bloodless, and his facial features were distinct.
He Xi yawned tiredly.
Where did you go this time? he asked in a low voice. I can smell fresh blood on you.
He raised his eyes and looked at Ming Sihan.
Ming Sihan turned around and walked towards He Xi.
Your nose is really sharp.
Are you really injured? He Xis face darkened. There werent many people who could injure Ming Sihan. Didnt you already smell it?
Show me where youre injured.
As He Xi spoke, she was about to take off Ming Sihans clothes, but Ming Sihan pushed her away.
Its just some superficial injuries, he said casually.
But you dont look too good.
Dont interfere in my business. Its your business to save Mo Chengfeng.
Ming Sihan didnt want to talk about this anymore. It was just a little injury, it wasnt a big deal.
His words made He Xis expression turn ugly.
Sure. If you dont tell me, Ill tell Ruyue that youre seriously injured.
You
Ming Sihan clenched his fists. This guy did it on purpose, didnt he?
She clearly knew that he did not want Ruyue to worry.
Show me your wound.
Ming Sihan had no choice but to pull open his cor, revealing his fair skin, firm chest, and tight muscles.
There were three wounds on his chest. The wounds had not scabbed over and had not been treated properly.
This wound is obviously not man-made.
He Xi said solemnly.
She looked at Ming Sihan with aplicated gaze and said,Tell me, what exactly left this wound?
Lone Tapir of the Netherworld Sea.
What?!
He Xi couldnt help but scream.
Shut up, dont wake Ruyue up.
Ming Sihans expression turned serious and he covered He Xis mouth.
Was this fellow trying to wake Ruyue up?
Lone Tapir, why did you provoke that thing? Are you tired of living? He Xi broke free from Ming Sihans grip and lowered her voice.
The Netherworld Sea was a forbidden area. No one dared to go there. Even if he went to that ce, he might not be able toe back alive.
The Lone Tapirs Beast Core can increase ones cultivation.
And then you went?
He Xi didnt know what to say about this man.
He was too ambitious.
He thought that the Netherworld Sea was his home and that he could go there just like that.
Fortunately, the lone tapir was only a lone ranger. If it was a group of lone tapirs, this man probably wouldnt be able to return.
Thats not the point. If you want to treat my wound, hurry up. If you dont want to treat my wound, Ill put on my clothes.
Ming Sihan said coldly.
He Xi sighed. She couldnt do anything to this man. As she treated his wound, she your cultivation enough?
It was far enough to go to the Seven Saint Continent.
Ruyue is only at the Aurous Core Stage, so shes not strong enough. Shell have to be at least at the Nascent Soul Stage to go to the Seven Saint Continent with me.
Sigh, I knew it would be like this.
He Xi had an expression of Ive already guessed it. There was no need to worry about being sad at all.
Have you obtained the Beast Core? Of course!
When do you n to feed Ruyue?
We have to wait. She has just advanced to the Golden Core realm. If we give her a Beast Core now, she wont be able to withstand too much power entering her body.
Hehe, youre really considerate.
None of your business!
Ming Sihan scolded.
He Xi was full of envy and jealousy.
This fellow really wanted a Beast Core, but he didnt have one.
He could only envy others.
He had specially prepared this Beast Core for Ruyue.
It was impossible to give it to He Xi.
Sigh, it feels good to have someone in pain.
He Xi said sourly.
Ming Sihan ignored He Xi and let her treat his wound.
Ah Ming, as the saying goes, women are like clothes, and brothers are like hands and feet. Cant you give a beast core to a brother? Are brothers not as important as women?
He Xi raised his eyebrows slightly.
Beast cores were very tempting.
He couldnt help but care.
Ming Sihan nced at He Xi and said,Why do you have to humiliate yourself? Have you ever seen someone run naked outside with broken limbs?
This
He Xi was speechless for a moment. Youre so heartless, he muttered softly. What is conscience? Can it be eaten?
Ming Sihan raised his eyebrows slightly.
Forget it, I wont argue with you anymore. I have to continue developing my antidote, otherwise MO Chengfeng wont be saved.
He Xi put all her focus on her work.
This antidote was quite difficult to develop.
Yes.
Ming Sihan nodded and walked towards the kitchen.
At night, MO Ruyue woke up.
After a nap, he finally felt much more energetic.
As soon as she opened her eyes, she saw Ming Sihan.
Master.
MO Ruyue called out softly as she looked at the man in front of her.
She sat up and continued,Hows my brother?
The antidote is not so easy to develop. MO Chengfeng is still the same as before.
Hearing Ming Sihans words, MO Ruyue sighed.
Let He Xi rest as well. He hasnt rested for a few days.
MO Ruyue was worried that He Xi would not be able to handle it.
Since she had rested well, she could take care of MO Chengfeng.
Ming Sihan said, You dont have to worry about him. Hes fine for now. Hell tell you when he cant take it.
Demonic beasts couldst longer than humans.
Are you really alright?
Dont worry, He Xi isnt the kind of person who tries to be brave.
Master, you seem to know He Xi very well.
He Xi also knew Ming Sihan very well.
Was there some kind of unclear rtionship between the two of them?
Chapter 844 - 844: The Evil Qi from the Evil Spirit
Chapter 844 - 844: The Evil Qi from the Evil Spirit
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Is that so? I dont know.
Ming Sihan shook his head, indicating that he didnt know.
Then, Ming Sihan asked with concern, You should be hungry, right?
As soon as he finished speaking, he heard MO Ruyues stomach growling.
MO Ruyue smiled helplessly. Maybe Im really hungry.
Thats great. Ming Sihan smiled. Great? Why do you say its too good?
MO Ruyue asked curiously.
l can let you taste my cooking.
MO Ruyue was a little scared. She could not forget the scene of this man blowing up the kitchen.
This time, would he really not blow up the kitchen?
Wait here.
After he finished speaking, Ming Sihan stood up and left.
MO Ruyue was a little worried that Ming Sihan would cook. She thought about it and got up to follow him.
Lets see what that guy is doing there.
In the kitchen, Ming Sihan actually didnt blow up the kitchen this time.
Instead, he acted like a good wife and mother and was having sex.
Ming Sihan seemed to have noticed that there was someone at the door.
He raised his eyes and saw MO Ruyue. He smiled and said,Why are you here?
Come and take a look.
MO Ruyue said, mainly because she was a little worried.
She was afraid that this man would blow up the kitchen.
Now, it seemed that she had been overthinking.
As expected, Ming Sihans culinary skills were getting better and better after being with her.
Im going to give you some eggs to eat. How many poached eggs do you want?
Ming Sihan asked.
Just one is enough.
Mo Ruyue nced at the basket. There were only three eggs in it.
This was originally the home of an ordinary viger, but the original owner of this house had long left.
Therefore, they were temporarily staying there.
Ha, wait a moment.
MO Ruyue looked at Ming Sihan!s busy figure. She never thought that the aloof man would be busy in the kitchen.
He was really good in the hall and in the kitchen.
She looked exactly like her.
In terms of strength, this man was stronger than her.
In terms of culinary skills, she was better than this man.
Theyplemented each other perfectly.
After a while, Ming Sihan finally finished cooking the noodles. He ced a bowl of steaming hot noodles in front of MO Ruyue.
Try it. Does it taste okay?
He didnt know much. He only knew how to make noodles and steamed eggs.
Arent you going to get a bowl for He Xi?
Oh, I forgot about him. Ming Sihan said slowly.
Should we get him some more?
Its fine. Theres still some broth in the pot.
Alright, alright then.
Mo Ruyue picked up her chopsticks and started eating her noodles.
How is it? Is it delicious?
Ming Sihan asked as he looked at MO Ruyue eagerly, as if he wanted to receive a good review.
MO Ruyue took a bite and swallowed it with difficulty.
Master, your craftsmanship is amazing.
It was so salty. He must have poured the entire bottle of salt into it.
Hearing MO Ruyues praise, Ming Sihan smiled in satisfaction and give you more in the future.
Ruyues words were a great encouragement to him.
It was also a form of recognition.
MO Ruyues mouth twitched slightly when she heard that, but she still suggested,l dont like to eat too salty food. We can put less salt next time.
Theres not much salt. I put a lot of sugar. Dont you think its sweet?
Ming Sihan asked.
He frowned slightly.
Sweet?
She did not taste the sweetness at all.
Moreover, why did he put sugar underneath?
Such a strange operation.
It doesnt seem that sweet, right?
MO Ruyue could only eat poached eggs. After all, poached eggs were neither sweet nor salty.
Ming Sihan didnt believe what MO Ruyue said.
Because he put in a lot of sugar.
It was definitely not unsweet.
Hence, he picked up a pair of chopsticks and took some noodles from MO Ruyues bowl.
When he ate it, he was stunned.
So salty!
It was hard to swallow!
He quickly spat out the noodles.
This wasnt for humans to eat at all.
Ruyue, stop eating.
As he spoke, he took the noodles away with a depressed expression.
He actually put salt in as sugar.
Ruyue even said it was delicious.
He thought that his cooking was really delicious.
It seemed that he still had to learn it well.
Ming Sihan thought gloomily.
MO Ruyue saw that Ming Sihan was depressed and quickly went forward tofort him.
Master.
Ruyue.
Ming Sihan looked at MO Ruyue and didnt know what to say.
Master cant even make noodles.
Master, its not an important matter if I cant make the noodles.
MO Ruyue consoled.
Everyone had their own strengths and weaknesses.
There was no perfect person in this world.
A perfect person did not live in this world. That kind of person lived in everyones mind.
Ruyue.
Ming Sihan called out, his eyes moving slightly.
Master?
MO Ruyue looked at the man in front of her in confusion.
Master will teach you a formation.
Formation? Sure, I want to learn.
When Ruyue heard that this man wanted to teach her something new, her eyes lit up.
A very simple Demon Subduing Formation.
What? We are fiendish cultivators. Isnt this array formation meant to deal with us?
What are you thinking? The Demon Subduing Array is not very useful to us. It is only useful to demons.
Oh, Ill learn then. Alright, then take a look at this book first.
Alright then.
Mo Ruyue took the book from Ming Sihans hands. She thought that this man was going to call her directly.
So she still had to read. Every time she read, she would feel a headache.
As expected, he couldnt read.
Seeing MO Ruyue reading, Ming Sihan got up and went outside to take a look.
He Xi was developing medicine.
Outside, ck evil Qi floated in the sky and scattered in clumps.
After a night, MO Ruyue had memorized the entire manual.
For some reason, she felt that these books were easy to memorize, but it was a little difficult to understand the meaning behind them.
Logically speaking, only by understanding the meaning could one memorize the book better.
She was the exact opposite.
Ming Sihan was meditating on the roof of the house. The sky was blue, and the sunlight was shining on his body.
Upon seeing this, MO Ruyue flew up to the roof.
The man who was meditating opened his eyes. His dark red eyes were like gems.
HIS long silver-wnlte nail was exceptionally elegant.
The man was handsome and had well-defined facial features.
Hows your book?
l can barely recite itpletely.
MO Ruyue smiled modestly.
She did not know that she had such an ability. It would be great if she could recite it like this when she was studying.
Perhaps he had been enlightened toote.
Is that so?
Of course.
Mo Ruyue sat beside Ming Sihan and looked into the distance. Her face fell and she said,The weather is really good. It would be great if my brother could get better too.
Dont worry, itll be fine.
Ming Sihanforted her.
Seeing the woman beside him so worried about another man, he felt his heart ache.
MO Chengfeng should be content. Ruyue was actually so worried about him.
That damned guy!
Suddenly, MO Ruyue seemed to have discovered something. Her face turned cold as she said,Master, what is that thing flying in the sky?
A few balls of ck smoke were flying everywhere. It was MO Ruyues first time seeing such a thing.
It should be the evil energy produced by the evil spirit. Dont worry too much about it.
Will this affect anything?
It can control corpses. Its not a threat to us.
However, it was very dangerous for ordinary people.
This was because ordinary people would be infected when they came into contact with dead bodies..
Chapter 845 - 845: You Don’ t Even Know How to Chase After
Chapter 845 - 845: You Don t Even Know How to Chase After
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue was learning the Demon Subduing Formation from Ming Sihan. It didnt take long for MO Ruyue to grasp the basic essentials.
Ruyue, you really didnt disappoint me. Youve learned this Demon Subduing Array in the shortest time possible.
Ming Sihan praised MO Ruyue. He was getting more and more satisfied with her.
She was beautiful, smart, virtuous, and capable. Who wouldnt like her?
MO Ruyue was the only figure in his dark red eyes. It seemed that he could not see anyone else except MO Ruyue.
Hearing Ming Sihans praise, MO Ruyue smiled embarrassedly.
Its all thanks to Masters good teachings. she said humbly.
The reason why she learned so quickly was because Ming Sihan taught her step by step. He taught her so well.
The key was patience.
Lets rest for a while. Theres no hurry to practice the Demon Subduing
Formation.
Yes, Master.
MO Ruyue replied.
The blue sky was cloudless, and the human world was plunged into misery.
Normally, MO Ruyue would be very happy to see such good weather.
However, she was not in the mood for that right now.
The gue brought by the demons had persecuted countless people.
MO Chengfeng still showed no signs of waking up.
MO Ruyue sat quietly on the grass, allowing the sunlight to shine on her body, warming her up.
At this moment, Ming Sihan came out of the room with a cup of tea.
Drink some water.
Master.
Mo Ruyue quickly stood up.
For some reason, he felt that his master seemed to be particrly attentive to him recently.
And he was too good to her.
His previous master was not like this.
Whats wrong?
Ming Sihan asked. Why was Ruyue staring at him?
He didnt even blink. Could it be that there was something dirty on his face?
MO Ruyue came back to her senses. Her face was slightly flushed, and she hurriedly averted her gaze.
Nothing, I just thought of a problem.
She reached out and took the water from Ming Sihan.
She took a small sip.
Oh, what is it?
That book says that Dao begets one, one begets two, two begets three, and three begets all things. Is there nothing after all things?
MO Ruyue asked.
She looked into Ming Sihans eyes in confusion.
Those eyes were deep and attractive.
Behind all things?
Yes, there should be something behind all things.
MO Ruyue nodded with a serious expression.
At the very least, there should be something behind all the things she knew.
That book seemed to be a little iplete.
Nothing canpare to you.
Ming Sihan said faintly with a serious look in his eyes.
Everything Not as good as me?
At first, MO Ruyue did not notice anything amiss. It was only when she read it that she realized something was wrong.
When their eyes met, MO Ruyue saw a strange emotion in Ming Sihans eyes.
Was this a confession?
MO Ruyue was puzzled.
Master, thats impossible. Confess to her.
Suddenly, there was a scream, and He Xis voice came from the room. The atmosphere between MO Ruyue and Ming Sihan was instantly broken.
Theres a situation.
MO Ruyue was d that He Xi had cried out in rm. Otherwise, she would not have known what to do.
Her master probably wasnt confessing to her, but she misunderstood.
How awkward.
Taking advantage of the noise in the room, she quickly slipped back into the room.
Ming Sihan watched as MO Ruyue left and couldnt help but feel annoyed.
Was He Xi doing this on purpose?
He was just about to let Ruyue know his feelings, but it was ruined.
After thinking about it, Ming Sihan could only enter the room.
He Xi didnt care about human affairs!
He Xi, whats wrong?
MO Ruyue came into the room and asked with anticipation.
He Xis eyes were filled with tears as he said excitedly, Look, MO Chengfengsplexion seems to be getting better.
It must be the effect of his newly developed medicine.
MO Ruyue looked at him and said in surprise, Its true. My brothersplexion is getting better and better. She cried tears of joy. This was great.
She hugged the man beside her excitedly.
Ming Sihan feltplicated when he saw MO Ruyue hugging him.
She didnt know if she should be happy or sad.
Ruyue was actually so excited for another man and hugged him tightly. MO Ruyue let go of Ming Sihan. Master, my brother will recover soon. Yes.
Ming Sihan looked at MO Chengfeng with aplicated expression.
She wanted MO Chengfeng to wake up, but she also didnt want him to wake up.
After MO Chengfeng woke up, Ruyue would definitely follow him around.
However, Ruyue would be upset if this fellow died.
That damned MO Chengfeng, torturing Ruyue and torturing him like this.
At night, MO Ruyue stayed by MO Chengfengs bed. This scene made Ming Sihan want to cremate MO Chengfeng and his bed.
Ming Sihan left the room in a huff. It was better not to see it.
Out of sight, out of mind.
He Xi fed thest dose of medicine to MO Chengfeng, stretched and said, Alright, if nothing goes wrong, he should wake up tomorrow.
He had finally developed a new prescription.
However, he still had to let others experiment with this prescription to see how effective it was.
During this period of time, he had been using MO Chengfeng to practice.
Ill stay here and guard him.
MO Ruyue suppressed the excitement in her heart.
He hoped that MO Chengfeng could open his eyes. He had slept long enough.
MO Ruyue felt a little scared if she continued sleeping like this.
You dont have to guard him all night. Dont wait for MO Chengfeng to wake up and you fall.
He Xi consoled.
He nced at the man standing at the door and could feel his anger.
With that, He Xi walked out of the door.
Ming Sihan turned around with his back facing He Xi.
Are you depressed? Angry? Are you jealous?
None of your business.
Hearing the mans exasperated voice, He Xi could not help butugh.
There was a hint of schadenfreude in his smile.
What are youughing at?
Its nothing. Ive just never seen you like this before. Its very funny.
He Xis smile disappeared, and his face turned serious.
In the past, Ming Sihan was arrogant, cold, and heartless.
Right now, Ming Sihan seemed to be jealous.
His entire body emitted a sour smell.
Ming Sihan nced at He Xi and snorted.
You confessed to Ruyue? Confess what?
Of course its your intention!
My feelings are so obvious. Doesnt she know? Ah, this
Ming Sihan!s words made He Xi speechless.
He Xi raised her hand and pressed the space between her eyebrows. After settling MO Chengfengs matter, she had to help Ming Sihan settle his marriage.
He was really a busy man.
Its not that I want to say this, but your intentions have to be more obvious.
How obvious?
Why dont you just say it directly?
Isnt it obvious enough to say it directly?
He Xi was sure that Ming Sihan had never said it directly.
Otherwise, how could Ruyue not know?
Ming Sihans eyes flickered. 1 cant say it.
He Xi licked her dry lips and said,Then you still have to say it. Gather your courage and say it!
Ming Sihan pursed his lips and asked,ls it useful to say it directly? Dont you think its too old-fashioned?
l wont.
Although He Xi said that, she rolled her eyes in her heart.
This guy was quite famous.
This venerable self is a dignified Demon Venerable after all, but I actually want to confess to a woman!
You dont have to confess. No one forced you.
He Xi rolled her eyes.
He even knew that he was a dignified Demon Venerable, but he didnt even know how to chase after a girl. What was the use of this demon?
It was nothing.
He Xi cursed Ming Sihan in her heart..
Chapter 846 - 846: Huge Monster
Chapter 846 - 846: Huge Monster
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
At night, He Xi went to rest. MO Ruyue was still waiting by MO Chengfengs bedside.
Ming Sihan couldnt stand it anymore.
He went to MO Chengfengs bedside and said, Ruyue, go and rest. Leave this to me.
Master, go and rest. l
Shut up. Are you trying to order me around?
l didnt.
MO Ruyue replied helplessly.
She just didnt want her master to be tired.
Then listen to me and go rest.
Ming Sihan said with a face that didnt allow him to refuse.
MO Ruyue hesitated for a moment. Her Master had already said so. If she continued to say anything, wouldnt she be disrespecting her Master?
Alright, Ill go rest first.
Go ahead.
Ming Sihan watched as Ruyues back disappeared from the staircase.
Only Ming Sihan and MO Chengfeng were left in the room.
Staring at MO Chengfeng on the bed, Ming Sihan felt that this man was an eyesore.
In the past, he found it pleasing to the eye, but now, it was bing more and more unpleasant.
Dont ruin my and Ruyues ns.
Ming Sihan said thoughtfully as he stared at MO Chengfeng.
He liked MO Ruyue.
In the beginning, he only felt that Ruyue was a little special. The more he interacted with her, the more familiar he felt toward her.
He did not know where this sense of familiarity came from.
He only knew that he could not live without her anymore.
No one could snatch Ruyue away.
Ming Sihans expression became extremely gloomy.
After midnight, Ming Sihan stopped protecting MO Chengfeng.
He held his breath and went to MO Ruyue!s room.
When he saw MO Ruyue resting on the bed, his footsteps paused for a moment before he quietly walked over.
There was a warm smile in his eyes.
Ruyue was sleeping soundly.
Xuanling immortal sect
At this moment, Ling Shoumo had gathered all the sect masters of the immortal sects at Xuanling Immortal Sect.
This was their second meeting.
Ling Shoumos expression was solemn. The current situation in the human world was far more terrifying than he had imagined.
This Seven Stars Hall seems to have changed a little.
A sect leader seemed to have discovered something and could not help but ask curiously.
He remembered that the Seven Stars Hall wasnt this new.
This is not the main point of this meeting!
Ling Shoumo nced at the Sect Leader. He still had the mood to talk about this at a time like this?
The Sect Leader felt that he was not interested in Ling Shoumos words and could only shut his mouth.
He was just asking out of curiosity.
He didnt expect the Xuanling Sect Master to be so fierce. l believe everyone knows why I summoned you here, right? Ling Shoumo asked as he swept his gaze across the crowd.
Everyone was silent. Of course, they knew Ling Shoumos purpose.
However, we are not immortals who know everything.
To put it bluntly, they were just cultivators with average strength.
It was not bad in this world. If it was in other worlds, it might be a very weak one.
The gue is raging, and the Evil Demons are gettingrger andrger. We cant just sit around and wait for death. Ling Shoumo said coldly.
The other sect leaders looked at each other.
One of the sect leaders stood out and said, Sect Leader Xuanling, we understand what youre saying. But how should we give it our all? Were not a match for that evil spirit at all.
Ling Shoumo looked at the Sect Leader of the Spirit Herbs Sect and said,Did your immortal sect develop an antidote to the gue?
Everyones eyes fell on the sect master of the Spirit Herbs Immortal Sect.
The Spirit Herbs Sects Sect Master felt a little embarrassed. He shook his head and said,Im sorry, we havent developed an antidote to the gue yet.
Is there any hope of developing an antidote?
Ling Shoumo asked conservatively.
The Spirit Medicine Immortal Sects medicine was famous for its good quality. Manymoners liked to buy the medicine developed by the Spirit Medicine Immortal Sect.
The Spirit Herbs Sect Masters face stiffened slightly. He braced himself and said,m afraid it wont be that easy to develop an antidote. After all, this gue was brought by the demons.
All in all, it was not easy to solve. Their Spirit Herbs Sect had no way to do it.
It was best not to ce their hopes on their Spirit Herbs Immortal Sect.
Because the greater the hope, the greater the disappointment.
Is there really no other way?The Tomato Sect Leader asked.
Everyone fell silent.
The same thing happened 300 years ago.
While everyone was in a daze, a ck shadow enveloped the entire Xuanling Immortal Sect.
The entire Xuanling Immortal Sect fell into darkness.
A terrifying voice rang out, Hahaha, Sect Masters of the immortal sects, hello.
Everyone hurried outside and saw a skull formed by ck gas appear in the sky. The eyes of the skull emitted a red light.
His voice was heavy.
This is a demon.
Evil demon!
All the sect masters summoned their swords and looked nervously at the demons in the sky.
It seemed like he was going to fight to the death with the demons.
Demon, what are you trying to do?
Ling Shoumo said coldly.
The evil spiritughed loudly, Nonsense, of course Im going to turn this world into something in my hands. Youll all be my ythings.
Hahaha
His arrogantughter resounded through the clouds.
The sect masters of the immortal sects then started fighting with the demons.
Everyone began to set up a formation. The golden light formed a huge sword, which stabbed towards the evil devil.
Hahaha, you guys are really interesting. This is just my illusory body. Its just a small illusory body, but it scared you guys so much.
The skull let out a mockingugh.
Damn it, our attacks are useless against him. The Tomato Sect Leader gritted his teeth.
Sect leaders, well meet again in the future. Hahaha
The evil spiritughed and left.
After the evil spirit left, the entire Xuanling Immortal Sect was enveloped in
sunlight again.
It was as if the scene just now had never happened.
We are no match for the evil demons!
Thats right. Even an illusory body is so powerful, let alone a physical body!
The sect leaders of the immortal sects spoke in despair.
The gue brought by the demons was already terrifying enough.
He did not expect that after the gue, there would be all kinds of monsters wreaking havoc in the human world. Those monsters seemed to have received some instructions and ate people one by one.
The people of the immortal sects could not do anything about the gue, but they were more than enough to deal with those monsters.
Of course, the more powerful monsters were not so easy to deal with.
These monsters not only brought disaster to the human world, but alsounched an attack on the demon world and the immortal sects.
demon world
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin were currently fighting against a huge monster with their men.
The huge monster could knock down a tree with a p.
His eyes were as big asnterns.
This monster is too big.
Ye Junlins expression was solemn, and his brows were tightly furrowed. He felt that he was no match for the spiritual monster. Everywhere this monster went, it was in ruins and a mess.
Its big and very destructive!
Ye Yunfeng pursed his lips and flew above the monsters head with his sword.
The monsters hand pped down on its head.
Ye Yunfeng bounced up and dodged the monsters attack.
The spiritual monsters hand directly hit its own head. The strength was so great that it made people speechless.
The spiritual monster fell to the ground with a thud..
Chapter 847 - 847: Deliberately Misleading
Chapter 847 - 847: Deliberately Misleading
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Although its aggressive, it seems quite stupid.
Ye Yunfeng concluded.
Wasnt it quite stupid for him to be so ruthless to himself?
The spiritual monster fell to the ground and could not get up.
The subordinates of the Demon Realm were all confused.
This spiritual monster was a little too stupid.
Everyone had yet to attack the spiritual monster, but the spiritual monster had beaten them down.
Just as everyone rxed, they saw the spiritual monster instantly split into pieces.
The big monsters turned into countless small monsters. These small monsters were like humans and then attacked the subordinates of the demon world.
Everyone, be careful.
Ye Yunfeng withdrew his smile and spoke with a solemn expression.
He gripped the hilt of his sword tightly.
In an instant, the war between the two sides began.
They couldnt beat such a big monster, but they could still deal with these small monsters.
When they stabbed the sword into the monsters heart, the monster instantly turned into a cloud of ck smoke and disappeared into the air.
Not long after, all the monsters were eliminated.
Finally, theyre all gone.
Ye Junlin heaved a sigh of relief.
Everyone rxed.
Although the little monsters were easy to deal with, some of them were still injured.
At this moment, the earth shook and the mountains shook. The ground gradually caved in as if something was crawling out of the ground.
The big monster that had disappeared just now suddenly appeared in front of them.
Whats going on? Isnt that monster gone?
Resurrected? Can this spiritual monster be resurrected indefinitely?
This, how should we deal with this?
Everyone looked at each other, not knowing what to do.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin were also somewhat helpless.
They could revive after being killed. What were they supposed to do?
Li Zeyan and Hillghost sat on the roof, silently watching the scene in front of them.
It seems that they cant deal with that spiritual monster, so its our turn. Li Zeyan said with all his thoughts.
Unless it was absolutely necessary, he really did not want to expose his strength.
But now, Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin seemed to be unable to deal with the big monster.
If he didnt stop it, the Demon Pce might be destroyed by the big monster.
This was where his sister lived. He would never allow anyone to destroy this ce.
Squeak
Hillghost agreed.
So, Hillghost, Ill leave that big monster to you.
Li Zeyan sat on the roof and gave the order.
Hillghost, however, was indifferent and squeaked in dissatisfaction.
Why did she let him go over?
What was this guy doing?
Hillghost looked at Li Zeyan with disdain.
Li Zeyan coughed lightly and said, l should save my strength to deal with more powerful monsters. Ill leave this little monster to you.
Moreover, once my strength is exposed, everyone will be afraid. It doesnt matter if your strength is exposed. Everyone knows Hillghost has that strength.
He exined righteously.
Hillghost was skeptical. Was it really like this?
Why was it a little suspicious?
Hurry up and help. If you dont help, theyll be finished.
Li Zeyan urged.
Hillghost thought for a moment and walked over.
Li Zeyan smiled as he watched Hillghost leave.
Hillghost was too naive.
With Hillghosts help, the big monster was no match for Hillghost at all.
This was because Hillghost could also erge its body infinitely.
When the body of the mountain ghost was the same as that of the big monster, the stupid big monster was no match for the mountain ghost at all. Hillghost used a Tail Sweep, a Spinning Kick, and an Air Splitting sh.
It directly split the big monster into two.
He stepped on the monsters body and directly shattered it.
Everyone was stunned by the scene in front of them.
They knew that Mountain Ghost was powerful, but they didnt know that he was this powerful.
The big monster was gone just like that. Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin looked at each other.
Mountain Ghost is so powerful.
Its Ruyues Mountain Ghost.
The two of them were familiar with the mountain ghost and knew that it was Ruyues pet.
Hillghost shrunk its body like a deted balloon.
After a while, it returned to its original state.
Then, Hillghost returned to Li Zeyans side with a smug look on his face.
Hillghost, youre really amazing. If big sister knew, she would definitely praise you.
Li Zeyanplimented.
Squeak
Hillghost was delighted to hear Li Zeyans words.
At this moment, MO Ruyue was cooking for everyone.
Brother, Ill make you something delicious.
MO Ruyue said happily. She was really happy that MO Chengfeng was getting better.
MO Chengfeng had not eaten for a few days, so his stomach must be empty.
Thank you.
Were family, so theres no need to thank me.
MO Ruyue felt that MO Chengfeng was treating her as an outsider.
You should thank me the most, He Xi said.
Thank you, Divine Doctor He Xi, for your miraculous hands are able to bring back the dead!
Naturally, MO Chengfeng did not hold back his praise.
He Xi had been working day and night to develop the antidote for him.
He was very grateful.
MO Chengfeng looked at Ming Sihan, who didnt say a word. He felt that the demon didnt look too good.
He did not know what had happened, but he did not dare to provoke the Demon Venerable.
Therefore, he did not speak to the Demon Venerable.
Ming Sihan walked towards the kitchen and said without waiting for MO Ruyues rejection,Let me help you. No need, Im fineing alone.
l told you, Ill help you!
Hearing Ming Sihans emphasis, MO Ruyue had no choice but to let him be.
If he didnt do it, Ming Sihan might get angry. Alright then, Master. Help me light the fire.
Yes.
Ming Sihan responded faintly.
At this moment, MO Chengfeng also walked into the kitchen and asked,Ruyue, is there anything I can help with? No need. Youre very weak now. You should rest well.
MO Ruyue rejected MO Chengfeng.
She could handle it alone.
Its fine. Im free anyway. Why dont I cut the vegetables?
Can you cut the vegetables? MO Ruyue asked worriedly.
Of course. Ruyue, you can watch.
As he spoke, MO Chengfeng began to cut the vegetables.
MO Chengfeng paused what he was doing and asked,Do you want to slice or shred this radish?
Why dont we just shred it?
Alright.
MO Ruyue was dazzled by MO Chengfengs knife skills.
In any case, it seemed to be better than what she had cut.
The thickness of the shreds she cut was different, but the thickness of the shreds MO Chengfeng cut was almost the same.
MO Ruyue was stunned.
Ming Sihan looked at this scene and snorted coldly. He deliberately made the kitchen full of smoke.
The green smoke was so thick that one could not open their eyes.
MO Chengfeng and MO Ruyue couldnt stand the smoke.
Especially MO Chengfeng.
Ruyue, the smoke is too smoky for my eyes. Ill go out for a while.
MO Chengfeng hurriedly left the kitchen. Staying in the kitchen was simply torture.
After all, MO Ruyue had been in the kitchen for a long time. What kind of situation had she not encountered?
She quickly came to Ming Sihans side and looked at the green smokeing out of the stove.Let me light the fire.
This guy still didnt know how to start a fire.
The smoke was so thick that it was suffocating.
Seeing that MO Ruyue was about to start a fire, Ming Sihan pulled MO Ruyues hand into his arms.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but fall into Ming Sihans arms..
Chapter 848 - 848: Master Has Been A Little Strange Recently
Chapter 848 - 848: Master Has Been A Little Strange Recently
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Master, whats wrong?
Tears flowed down from her red eyes. Why are you crying? Ming Sihan paused and asked.
Im not crying. Im being smoked.
MO Ruyue sniffed and quickly left Ming Sihans arms. She couldnt hold on any longer.
He quickly closed his eyes and started the fire.
The fire quickly burned up and the green smoke disappeared.
MO Ruyue ran outside to get some fresh air, taking deep breaths.
After a long time, MO Ruyue felt much better.
She returned to the kitchen and looked at Ming Sihan, Master, dont your eyes hurt?
Its alright. I dont feel particrly ufortable.
The fire was already burning. Ming Sihan went to the ce where the vegetables were being cut and identally knocked the chopping board onto the ground.
Ah, 1 identally knocked over the chopping board. What should 1 do?
Ming Sihan looked at the shredded radish on the ground and helplessly spread his hands.
Mo Ruyue turned around and did not think too much about it.
Seeing that the carrot shreds were covered in dust, he could only say,l can only cut some more carrots.
Then leave it to me.
Ming Sihan took the initiative.
Then, he would show off his skills in front of MO Ruyue.
However, MO Ruyue didnt say anything. Ming Sihan pursed his lips and nced at MO Ruyue. He deliberately asked, Ruyue, what do you think of this shredded radish?
Yes, sure.
MO Ruyue nced at him and said vaguely.
She was peeling garlic.
Can I?
Was there no other word?
Ming Sihan snorted and was a little angry.
Upon hearing this, MO Ruyue rolled her eyes and said, Master, this saber technique is really good. The cutting is also too good!
Is that so?
Hearing the bted praise, Ming Sihan felt less unhappy.
But he was still a little angry.
Its even better than my brothers!
MO Ruyue nodded approvingly.
This time, Ming Sihan wasnt angry at all. He was very happy.
MO Ruyue had said that he was definitely better than MO Chengfeng.
This sentence made him feel very satisfied.
MO Chengfeng had wanted toe in and help, but when he saw the demon and Ruyue chatting andughing, he tactfully stayed outside.
Ming Sihan nced at MO Chengfengs concession, which made him very satisfied.
Fortunately, MO Chengfeng was tactful.
Since he was already Ruyues brother, he had to act like one.
Soon, the food was ready.
Actually, MO Ruyue had almost used up all the ingredients here, and there were not many left.
MO Ruyue had also plundered some ingredients from the neighboring vige over the past few days.
There were basically no living people in the nearby viges.
Im starving, Im starving. I want to eat!
He Xi shouted loudly.
It didnt matter if he didnt sleep or rest for a few days. The important thing was that he had to have food. As long as there was food, everything was negotiable.
Come,e,e, Hurry up and eat. The ingredients here are limited, so we can only make a few simple dishes.
MO Ruyue hurriedly served the noodles.
There was no rice here at all, so they could only eat noodles.
He Xi took the noodles and started eating happily.
Its too delicious. Its healing, its healing.
He Xi imitated MO Ruyues words, her face full of exaggeration.
Brother, you eat too.
Yes.
MO Chengfeng smiled and nodded.
Ming Sihan, who was standing at the side, was not satisfied. In Ruyues heart, who was more important, him or MO Chengfeng? Why did Ruyue speak to MO Chengfeng first?
Master, you eat too.
MO Ruyues gaze fell on Ming Sihan and saw that he seemed a little unhappy.
These days, Masters mood seemed to be a little fickle.
Was he sick?
MO Ruyue was somewhat puzzled. l dont have much of an appetite,
No appetite?
MO Ruyue nced at the few dishes. Could it be that her master thought these dishes were too in?
However, with the current conditions, she could not find any chickens, ducks, or geese to cook.
Master, make do with it first. When we go back, Ill definitely make some delicious tonics for vou.
MO Ruyue said seriously.
Ming Sihan gripped his chopsticks tightly. Ruyue didnt know why he didnt have an appetite.
He put down his chopsticks and said coldly, You guys eat. Im going out to get some fresh air.
After he finished speaking, Ming Sihan left without looking back.
This
MO Ruyue looked at Ming Sihan!s back and was a little confused.
Nio Chengfeng knew the reason, but he did not say it.
He Xi, who was sucking on the noodles, said vaguely, That guy is so pretentious. Dont bother about him.
He wanted to save face and suffer.
He clearly cared about Ruyue, but he did not break the ice. Was he waiting for Ruyue to take the initiative to break it?
Judging from Ruyues innocent look, she had never thought about those things.
If no one took the initiative to break through thatyer of paper, these two people would never be on the same channel.
As an outsider, he could pierce through thatyer of paper, but he did not want to do so.
It wasnt like he liked Ruyue.
He only liked Ruyues cooking skills.
MO Ruyue was a little absent-minded. She whispered,l feel that Master has been a little strange recently. His emotions are always capricious.
He Xi smiled and remained silent.
MO Chengfeng lowered his eyes. He should just let nature take its course. He had no intention of reminding Ruyue.
If the Demon Venerable liked MO Ruyue, he would confess to her.
It was impossible for him to help.
Mo Ruyue saw that Ming Sihan had gone outside and was a little worried about him.
Thus, MO Ruyue also went outside and watched Ming Sihan enjoying the breeze outside.
She carefully approached Ming Sihan and asked,Master, you seem strange today. Whats wrong?
She looked at the man in front of her quietly.
How am I weird?
Ming Sihan snorted.
MO Ruyue walked to Ming Sihan and said,Master, you seem a little angry.
Why should I be angry?
Ming Sihan turned his face away awkwardly.
She didnt admit that she was angry.
Master, you still say that youre not angry. Youre just short of writing the word angry on your face.
MO Ruyue didnt know why this man was angry.
Could it be that the food today was not to his liking?
She couldnt be med for her cooking skills. She really didnt have any ingredients left.
As long as there were some ingredients, they would definitely be able to make some tricks.
Hmph, Im not angry!
Alright, Master, if youre not angry, Ill go in first.
MO Ruyue saw that Ming Sihan was acting weird, so she ignored him.
That person was still arguing.
After all, he was the dignified Demon Lord of the Demon World. Why was he acting like a child?
The Demon Venerable of the past was not like this.
Thinking back to the Demon Venerable in the past, how high-spirited he was. Seeing that MO Ruyue was about to leave, Ming Sihan grabbed her wrist.
You are not allowed to leave.
Master, what do you want to do? Tell me.
MO Ruyue lowered her head and looked at the big palm that was holding her wrist. She felt helpless.
Arent men very straightforward?
She couldnt see any straightforwardness in Ming Sihan.
She only saw the coyness that didnt belong to a man.
Ming Sihans ears turned red, and those words were stuck in his throat.
It seemed that she could not say it out loud.
Hmm?
Mo Ruyue quietly waited for the man to finish his sentence.
However, after waiting for a long time, the man still did not say anything..
Chapter 849 - 849: The Immortal Is Good-Looking
Chapter 849 - 849: The Immortal Is Good-Looking
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Master, if you have something to say, just say it. Dont be silent.
MO Ruyue said slowly.
Ming Sihan let go of MO Ruyue!s wrist and have nothing to say.
Alright then.
MO Ruyue walked back and thought to herself that it was ridiculous.
This guy was really strange.
When they reached the house, He Xi raised her head and looked at MO Ruyue.
He told you?
What did he say?
MO Ruyue asked incredulously. He Xi seemed to know something.
Nothing, nothing.
He shook his head and continued to eat the noodles in his bowl.
The noodles in the bowl were too delicious.
Fragrant!
As for Ming Sihans affairs, he would not interfere.
If he didnt dare to confess to someone he liked, then what was the point of liking him?
Wasnt Ming Sihan usually quite bold?
He was not afraid of anything, and he even dared to hit a tigers butt.
Now, something that could be settled with a single sentence had actually been dyed for so long.
Was he really not afraid that Ruyue would be taken away by others?
If she continued to hesitate, Ruyue would be someone elses Ruyue.
MO Chengfeng naturally saw through everything.
He did not expect that the Demon Venerable would actually fall in love with
Ru Yue.
However, Ruyue didnt seem to like the demon that much.
He Xi, what should we do next?
Mo Ruyue asked, her eyes fixed on He Xi.
Having eaten her fill, He Xi put down the bowl and chopsticks in her hands and let out a long burp.
Next, we have to split up and take the antidote and prescription I developed to save those who are gued by the gue,
As He Xi spoke, she took out countless bottles and jars from her pocket.
MO Ruyue nodded and took the prescription and bottles.
He did not expect He Xi to have concocted so many antidotes in such a short time.
However, there was a limit to the number of people who could be saved.
Others still had to rely on prescriptions to treat their illnesses.
Then how do we split up?
MO Chengfeng was about to speak because he wanted to be with Ruyue.
However, He Xi interrupted MO Chengfengs words forcefully and said before him,Of course, you and your master will be in the same team, and 1 will be in the same team as MO Chengfeng.
MO Ruyue opened her mouth, but when she thought of Ming Sihans difficult attitude, she could only reluctantly agree.
Alright, Ill go with my master.
Then its decided. Theres no time to lose. Lets go now.
He Xi stood up and cast a nce at MO Chengfeng.
He could only help Ming Sihan this much, and the rest would have to be fought for by Ming Sihan himself.
Mo Ruyue thought for a moment and nodded. Alright then, Ill go with Master.
Thus, He Xi and MO Chengfeng headed east.
MO Ruyue came outside and looked at Ming Sihans back.Master, lets hurry up and set off.
The matter of saving people could not be dyed.
Set off?
Yes, just now, we have already decided that the four of us will split into two groups to deliver the antidote to thosemoners! MO Chengfeng and He Xi are in the same group?
Ming Sihan asked.
MO Ruyue nodded.
Hearing this, Ming Sihan felt a little happier.
Then lets go.
Hearing Ming Sihans tone. MO Ruyue raised her eyebrows slightly. This guy seemed to be in a good mood again.
It was really hard to guess.
Thus, the master and disciple began to deliver the antidote.
They arrived at a city. There was basically no one in the city.
To be precise, there were basically no living people.
The Treasure Gathering Pavilion is closed.
MO Ruyue looked at the tightly shut doors of the Treasure Trove Pavilion and frowned slightly.
Thinking back to the time when the Treasure Gathering Pavilion was as crowded as a market, she had even sold things there.
But now, the Treasure Gathering Pavilion
On the street, the living dead smelled the scent of living people and walked towards MO Ruyue and Ming Sihan.
Their movements were slow, and they let out hoarse growls.
MO Ruyue felt a little scared when she heard this.
These living dead were like zombies.
Ming Sihan wouldnt let the living dead get close to him.
When arge group of living dead came over, Ming Sihan waved his hand, and those living dead instantly flew far away. Looks like the living shouldnt be here.
Ming Sihan said thoughtfully.
If there were living people here, these living dead would have rushed over after smelling their auras.
There was no need to go around in circles now.
MO Ruyue nodded and did not say anything. The air was filled with the smell of rotting flesh.
The two of them flew in the sky and looked down, searching for a living person.
Finally, they saw a group of living people on the top of a mountain.
These people built some simple shelters on the top of the mountain and made a high wall outside.
This was the only way to prevent the living dead from invading.
Master, lets go down!
Yes.
The two of them slowly descended.
No, no, please dont hurt my son.
Your child has been infected with the gue. If we dont burn him to death, he will be a living dead and infect all of us! At that time, we will all be living dead.
But this is my only son!
Not even your only son. Otherwise, you can take your son and leave this ce.
Seeing that everyone wanted to burn her son, the woman carried her son and left the shelter.
No matter what, she could not give up on her son.
Even if he became a living dead, he was still her son.
She and her son were the only ones left in the family.
At this moment, everyone saw a man and a woman descend from the sky.
Is, is it a deity?
Its the immortals who havee to save us.
When everyone saw this scene, they immediately knelt down excitedly.
They treated the man and woman in front of them as gods.
It was said that immortals were good-looking, but this man and woman were both handsome and beautiful.
He must be a god, as if he had walked out of a painting.
Mo Ruyues lips twitched. He was actually treating her like a god.
Ming Sihan was speechless.
He was not a god.
MO Ruyue coughed lightly and said to everyone,Were not immortals. Were people from the demon world.
As soon as he finished speaking, everyone was stunned.
MO, people from the Demon Realm?
The man at the front was stuttering.
How could such a good-looking couple be from the Demon Realm?
Was he lying?
It was impossible for people from the Demon Realm to be so good-looking!
You guys are so good-looking. How can you be from the Demon Realm?
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes at the man and emphasized,Dont judge a book by its cover. Do you really think that the people of the Demon Realm are ugly? The man paused.
He didnt know if the people of the Demon Realm were ugly or not, but he knew that the people of the Demon Realm were extremely vicious, cruel, cold, bloodthirsty, and murderous.
When everyone learned that these two people were not immortals but people from the demon world, their expressions changed.
All of them retreated, their eyes filled with fear.
You, what do you want? Were just a bunch of fleeing refugees. We have nothing here except for our rotten lives.
They thought that the people from the Demon Realm were here to rob them..
Chapter 850 - 850: Weigh the pros and cons
Chapter 850 - 850: Weigh the pros and cons
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Seeing everyones reaction, MO Ruyue leaned closer to Ming Sihan and whispered, Master, do the people of the Demon Realm often rob thesemoners?
Look at how scared these people are!
The Demon Realm cant have relied on this to be rich, right?
Ming Sihan curled his lips in disdain and said,Just by robbing a group ofmoners? Arent you underestimating the Demon Realm too much?
Whats the point of robbing these poor people? How much money can they have?
Obviously, Ming Sihan didnt care about the money of these poor people. Then where did our Demon Realms moneye from?
MO Ruyue asked curiously. Could it be that Ming Sihan had some business skills?
Do you remember Divine Wind Restaurant? Ming Sihan asked.
Of course I remember that damned restaurant.
She still felt a little pained when she thought about how she had been cheated of so much money.
Ming Sihan smiled and said,That restaurant is mine.
What?!
MO Ruyue widened her eyes in disbelief.
So, she was killed by Ming Sihan?
Cough cough, dont forget the reason why were here.
You
MO Ruyue gritted her teeth angrily.
Damn, I was tricked by Ming Sihan.
No wonder this guy was so rich. Divine Wind Restaurant was so scamming people. How could this guy not make money?
How infuriating.
MO Ruyue felt her heart ache when she thought of the money she had lost.
Lets get down to business first. Well talk about the restter.
Hearing Ming Sihans words, MO Ruyue could only put these things aside.
Good heavens, only now did she realize that she had been tricked by her master.
Dont worry, were not here to rob you.
MO Ruyue straightened her face and looked at the group of tremblingmoners in front of her. It seemed that the Demon Realm had a bad image in their hearts.
After all, some people especially liked to do bad things in the name of the Demon Realm.
The demon world did not like to rify anything, so it could only aggravate the misunderstanding.
Why should we believe what you said?
Themoners were still quite vignt.
They did not believe what the people of the Demon Realm said. They felt that what the people of the Demon Realm said was a lie.
MO Ruyue said helplessly. She nced at the people who had nothing and said,Let me ask you, what do you have that we can rob?
Do you have money on you? Do you have jewelry on you?
Or do you have food on you?
The three consecutive questions made themoners speechless.
At this moment, a glimmer of hope lit up in the eyes of the woman holding the child.
There was no other way now. It was better to believe the man and woman in front of him.
The woman knelt down and said to MO Ruyue,Miss, please save my poor child.
My child has contracted the gue. Hes dying.
MO Ruyue looked at the woman and then walked toward her.
She poured out a pill from the bottle that He Xi had given her.
Then, he gave the pill to the woman.
Feed this pill to your son, she said.
When the woman heard this, she did it without hesitation.
Other than trusting the woman in front of her, she had no other choice.
This was her only hope.
Everyone watched this scene quietly. They felt that the womans son was hopeless.
MO Ruyue and Ming Sihan waited silently for the medicine to take effect.
After a while, the child opened his eyes and began to vomit.
He vomited a lump of blood. Mother.
The child called out weakly.
Hey, dog, Mom is here.
The woman hugged her son and cried tears of joy.
Then, she kowtowed to Ruyue and hit her head hard on the ground. She did not know how to express her gratitude. He could only kowtow to express his gratitude.
Thank you, benefactor! Thank you, benefactor!
The woman cried as she shouted.
MO Ruyue hurriedly got the woman up and said,This pill was developed by Miracle Doctor He Xi of our Devil World. We also hope that everyone can get better.
The others finally believed that the people from the Demon Realm were not here to harm people.
MO Ruyue nced at the crowd and asked,ls there anyone else infected here?
Everyone shook their heads. The infected had long been driven away. They were all healthy people here.
Then who here knows how to read prescriptions?
MO Ruyue asked again.
As soon as he finished speaking, a man slowly stood up and said carefully,l, I
will.
She could not give all the medicine to these people, so she could only leave the prescription behind.
These medicines had to be used to save people in danger.
The man did not know what was going on, but he was almost certain that this woman was not a bad person.
If it was a bad person, there was no need to save the child just now.
MO Ruyue saw the mans slow movements and couldnt help but ask,Can you not be so indecisive?
Yes, yes, yes
The man hastened his steps and came before MO Ruyue. Im just an ordinary doctor. I dont have any money. the man said slowly.
The money had long been lost.
Hearing the mans words, MO Ruyue was speechless.
At a time like this, he thought that she was here to rob him. She took out the prescription and handed it to the man.
Can you understand this prescription?
MO Ruyue asked.
In this era, there were many illiterates. Not everyone could understand words.
However, the man in front of her said that he knew some medical skills, so he should know how to read prescriptions.
If he didnt even know how to read a prescription, how could he say that he knew some medical skills?
Yes, I can understand the things in the prescription.
The man nodded.
Moreover, he was quite familiar with these medicinal herbs. It was just that it might be a little difficult to obtain them.
If someone else gets infected with the gue in the future, you can use this prescription to save them, okay? MO Ruyue continued.
Yes, yes, yes.
The man quickly responded.
MO Ruyue was a little worried that this man would use this prescription to earn disaster money, so she put on a fierce face ande backter to check on your situation. If you dare to use this prescription to make money, Ill definitely kill you when Ie back!
l dont dare, 1 dont dare, I will definitely listen to you and help the people treat their illnesses.
The man shook his head.
He had the idea of making money, but not now.
He knew how to weigh the pros and cons.
Alright, I believe you. Ille back to see youter.
MO Ruyue then turned around and returned to Ming Sihans side.
Master, lets go now, she said in a low voice.
Yes.
Thus, the two of them left this ce and went to the next location.
In another city, MO Ruyue and Ming Sihan met Ling Shoumo.
Ling Shoumo was leading a group of disciples from the Celestial Gate to kill the living dead.
Everyone looked at each other, and the atmosphere seemed a little awkward.
Master, do you want to talk to him?
If they had something to say, she would just leave.
MO Ruyue didnt want to see Ling Shoumo. Being stared at by that man made her feel a little ufortable.
It made her want to escape.
What is there to talk about with him?
Ming Sihan snorted, feeling a little unhappy.
He felt even more ufortable when he realized that Ling Shoumo was sizing up Ruyue.
He used to ignore Ruyue, but now he was acting like he cared about her.. Who was he putting on an act for?
Chapter 851 - 851: Greedy
Chapter 851 - 851: Greedy
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
But arent we allies now?
MO Ruyue couldnt help but ask.
Now, the grudge between the Demon Realm and the Immortal Sect had been put aside. Now, they were united against the evil demons.
Therefore, the current Demon Realm and the immortal sect were considered allies.
So what if we are allies? They did their thing, and we did ours. It was fine as long as we had nothing to do with each other.
Ming Sihan replied indifferently.
They were all fighting against the demons.
MO Ruyue thought for a moment and felt that her Master was right.
In order to avoid Ling Shoumos gaze, MO Ruyue deliberately hid behind Ming Sihan.
She said softly, Master, there seem to be many normal people in this city.
Lets go and take a look at the people.
Not all cities had a gue. There were still some lucky cities that did not have a gue.
Yes.
Ming Sihan said and grabbed MO Ruyues wrist.
Now that Ruyue was his, Ling Shoumo could forget about it.
MO Ruyue wanted to break free, but when she thought of Ling Shoumo staring at her, she immediately gave up.
It was just the right time for Ling Shoumo topletely give up on her.
With such a good master like Ming Sihan, she would never return to Ling Shoumo!s side.
She was not masochistic.
In order to anger Ling Shoumo, MO Ruyue even hugged Ming Sihans arm.
When Ling Shoumo saw this scene, he tightened his grip on his sword, and his joints turned slightly white.
Ruyue actually
Ming Sihan felt that MO Ruyue was taking the initiative, and his heart suddenly became restless, even though he knew that MO Ruyue was only doing this to anger Ling Shoumo.
However, he still enjoyed it in his heart.
A hint of satisfaction shed in the depths of his dark red eyes.
He reached out and pulled MO Ruyue into his arms.
Master?
MO Ruyue looked at Ming Sihans actions and her body froze.
What was this?
For a moment, he was at a loss.
If you want to act, then you have to do the whole thing.
Ming Sihans lips curled up slightly and he hugged MO Ruyue even tighter.
He could sense Ling Shoumos displeasure.
The more unhappy that fellow was, the happier he would be.
MO Ruyue only escaped from Ming Sihans arms when Ling Shoumo couldnt see their backs anymore.
When she was in that mans arms, she felt an itch in her heart, as if a feather had brushed past her heart.
It was easy for her mind to let her imagination run wild.
His entire body felt very strange.
She couldnt quite describe what kind of feeling it was.
In short, if this continued, all the bones in her body would go limp.
Her breathing was also a little uneven.
Whats wrong?
Seeing the person in his arms leave, Ming Sihan felt lost.
Did Ruyue dislike being close to him that much? Just thinking about it made him feel depressed.
Ling Shoumo cant see anymore.
MO Ruyue exined simply, but she did not dare to look at Ming Sihan.
At this moment, her cheeks were a little hot.
Ruyue, are you in such a hurry to cut ties with me?
Ming Sihan stopped in his tracks. His dark red eyes were filled with seriousness.
Her long silver-white hair was blown by the wind, and it was a little messy.
His eyes were so serious and persistent.
There was no one else on this street except for them.
Ming Sihan lowered his eyes and looked at MO Ruyues shadow on the ground.
MO Ruyue also stopped in her tracks and asked in confusion,Master, what did you say?
Then, Ming Sihan pushed MO Ruyue to the corner so that she would face him. He held MO Ruyues shoulders tightly.
Her thin shoulders seemed to be able to break under his big palm.
MO Ruyue looked at the handsome man in front of her and felt as if her heart was about to jump out of her chest.
Was he being kabedon?
It didnt feel like it.
At this moment, MO Ruyues mind was still running wild.
Ming Sihan stared at the woman in front of him. It had alreadye to this point. Could this woman still not understand his feelings?
Master?
MO Ruyue pursed her red lips, her eyes filled with confusion.
This deeply defeated Ming Sihans psychological defense.
Hisst bit of rationality cleared his mind.
His eyes darkened as he wiped MO Ruyues soft lips with his thumb.
Isnt this ce very sweet?
Ruyue, who is the most important person in your heart?
Of course its Master.
MO Ruyue said without hesitation.
Ming Sihans actions seemed a little too frivolous.
Was this really her cold master?
At this moment, he was like a demon.
Her gaze was so seductive.
Is that so? The mans voice was a little hoarse. Master, youre so strange. Im so scared. MO Ruyue did not even dare to breathe loudly.
What was this man trying to do?
Ruyue, I like you!
After he finished speaking, Ming Sihan nted a kiss on MO Ruyues forehead.
This kiss was a little probing.
If Ruyue was against it, he would not go any deeper.
Of course, just because he wouldnt go deeper now didnt mean that he wouldnt go deeper in the future.
My heart loves you!
My heart loves you!
My heart loves you!
These words echoed in MO Ruyues mind, and her heart was beating rapidly.
It felt like everything had happened too suddenly.
Was Ming Sihan serious?
Or was he just toying with her?
He even kissed her forehead.
Master, you, what happened to you?
MO Ruyue just couldnt believe that such an outstanding man would like her.
What did she do?
Was Ming Sihan blind or did he take the wrong medicine?
What was so good about her? l like you, do you hear me? Ming Sihan said seriously.
His gaze was so firm. He was not joking.
I
Was this true?
MO Ruyues heart was pounding as she couldnt help but recall everything that had happened before.
It turned out that Ming Sihan had already confessed to her.
It was just that she did not know, or rather, she had never thought about it in that direction.
In her impression, the stronger a man was, the less he would like a woman.
Whats wrong with you?
Ming Sihan intimately pinched MO Ruyues slightly red cheeks.
Her cheeks were as red as an apple. It was really alluring.
Master, why do you like your disciple? My strength is not high, and Im not particrly beautiful. Im not considered intelligent, and Im also so greedy
In short, MO Ruyue felt that she had too many shorings.
Why would Ming Sihan like her?
He couldnt understand.
Ming Sihan stared at MO Ruyue. Sometimes, liking someone can only happen in an instant.
Perhaps he had been intrigued by this woman ever since she treated him like a little snake.
As they got to know each other, they were naturally attracted by Ruyues other good points.
He felt an indescribable sense of familiarity towards this woman. He wanted to get close to her and get close to her.
The shorings you mentioned are just what you think. Your strength has grown the fastest Ive ever seen, which means that youre very talented. As for your appearance, although I dont care much about it, I have to say that youre unique in the world. I think youre very intelligent, and your greedy appearance is also very unique.
He was greedy for money, but he did not love money as much as his life.
Ming Sihans words almost made MO Ruyue lose her sense of direction.
Perhaps this was the so-called beauty is in the eye of the beholder.
He did not expect that in his masters heart, he was actually so outstanding.
She even thought that mortals were not worthy of her..
Chapter 852 - 852: Fantasy
Chapter 852 - 852: Fantasy
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Master, dont say that. Im a little embarrassed.
MO Ruyue covered her face and smiled.
Listening to others praise him would indeed improve his mood.
He was extremely happy.
Im just telling the truth.
Mo Ruyue lowered her head and whispered, But Master, didnt you say that a teacher for a day is a father for life?
She remembered clearly how confident this man was back then.
Dont think of getting away with a fewpliments.
Did I say those words back then? Why dont I remember?
Ming Sihan pretended not to know anything.
Hmph! MO Ruyue snorted and continued, Master, youre really forgetful. You dont even remember what you said.
l dont remember those words, so I wont count them.
Alright, if you dont remember those words, then I wont count them. Then, was the rule that the Demon Realm cant fall in love set by you, Master? MO Ruyue raised her eyebrows slightly.
Ming Sihan coughed lightly and said, Thats to prevent you from falling in love with other people, but it doesnt prevent me from falling in love with
you.
The rules were set by this venerable self, so this venerable self can change them.
Hearing Ming Sihans words, MO Ruyues mouth twitched.
This man had already written the word shameless on his face.
Look at what he said.
This Demon Venerable was too unprincipled.
Our rtionship has changed so much, so I cant inherit your position as the Demon Lord?
MO Ruyue thought for a moment. Wasnt this a bit of a loss?
If he became the Demon Venerables disciple, he could even inherit the Demon Venerables position.
If she became the Demon Lords woman, she would not be able to inherit the Demon Lords position.
Ming Sihan was speechless. Was the position of the demon more important than him?
At this moment, Ming Sihan was extremely depressed.
Ruyue, listen to me. If youre with me, the Demon Realm is yours, the Demon Venerable position is yours, and Im also yours.
In addition to the Demon Realm and the Demon Venerable position, she also had a handsome husband that she could not find even if she held antern. Wasnt that good?
Husband was beautiful and sweet with words, how good was that?
After being fooled by Ming Sihan, MO Ruyue suddenly felt that this was a good deal.
She had money, power, and status. At night, she even had a beautiful husband to apany her.
Wasnt this a clear winner?
Master, 1 think what you said makes sense. I, MO Ruyue, will invest in this project.
Only a fool wouldnt do a business that was guaranteed to make a profit.
Moreover, she had long coveted her masters beauty.
However, as a girl, she had to be reserved. Moreover, her master was too strong, so she did not dare to make a move.
In the future, call me Ah Ming. Dont call me master anymore.
Master, master, master!
If he asked her to shout, she would shout.
Seeing this, Ming Sihan looked helpless and said,As long as youre happy.
It seemed pretty good to talk about love under the banner of master and disciple.
There was an inexplicable excitement.
Just like that, MO Ruyue epted this mans confession.
Ming Sihan didnt expect things to go so smoothly, but he didnt know what to do after that.
The two of them looked at each other, and the atmosphere was silent.
Ruyue
Master
The two of them spoke in unison.
MO Ruyue coughed lightly and said to the man beside her,Master, lets go save them first. Lets put aside all the love and affection, what do you think? Why should we put it aside? Cant we save people while were doing it?
Ming Sihan said unhappily.
MO Ruyue opened her mouth but hesitated.
Ming Sihan nodded slightly and grabbed MO Ruyues hand. Lets go save
them. Otherwise, those people will die.
MO Ruyue looked at Ming Sihan holding her hand tightly. The man strode forward with a natural expression.
However, she felt that the mans hand seemed to be a little stiff.
Pretending to be calm was really funny.
Master.
MO Ruyue called out lightly, her cheeks flushed.
Hearing her voice, Ming Sihan stopped in his tracks.
He looked at MO Ruyue gently.
MO Ruyue felt a little awkward about Ming Sihan!s change.
She was still not used to the fact that such an unapproachable man had be her lover.
It was like a dream.
Whats wrong?
Ming Sihan asked and his voice became gentle.
MO Ruyue felt as if she had been soaked in a pot of honey.
How could this man be so gentle?
It wasnt like this in the past.
MO Ruyue pretended to be calm and pulled her hand away from Ming Sihan!s.
Ming Sihan felt a little disappointed as he looked at the little hand that was pulled away.
Could it be that Ruyue didnt like him holding hands?
Then, he saw MO Ruyue holding his hand again. Their fingers were interlocked.
Lets hold hands like this.
MO Ruyue coughed lightly, her face turning red from Ming Sihans stare.
This was the first day of dating with the Demon Lord. There was no kiss, just a light kiss, a hug, and holding hands.
At this moment, Ming Sihan was in a good mood.
He held MO Ruyues hand tightly, and his palm felt warm.
The scene was so harmonious.
They arrived at the safe zone of the city, where people were chased out from time to time.
Some were even killed.
These people were all infected, and those who were unwilling to leave the safe zone were all killed.
Those who had been killed were piled up together, and someone was setting a fire beside them to burn the bodies clean.
Only when the body was burned clean would he not be a living dead.
Only then would everyone be able to survive safely.
When MO Ruyue and Ming Sihan appeared, a guard asked,Who are you? Where did ite from? What are you doing here?
He sized up the man and woman in front of him.
This man and woman did not look simple.
Mo Ruyue nodded slightly and looked straight at the guard in front of her.
Were here to save you.
You saved us?
The guard clearly did not quite believe it.
Countless doctors were helpless against this gue, and these two young men who didnt look like doctors were going to save them?
Wasnt this a fantasy?
Yes.
MO Ruyue nodded. Why did the guard look so skeptical?
Although she was not a doctor, she had the medicine and prescription given by the godly doctor.
This is a safe area. Outsiders are not allowed to enter, so the two of you cannot enter.
The guards stopped the two of them. He did not believe MO Ruyues words at all.
Stop us?
Ming Sihan smiled coldly.
MO Ruyue pulled Ming Sihan to calm him down.
These people were just ordinary people. Dont be calctive with these ordinary people who were narrow-minded.
There was no point in arguing with people who were not on the same level.
Then, MO Ruyue flew over with Ming Sihan.
He directly ignored the guards below.
Alert, alert, someone has broken into the safe zone. When the guard saw this, he hurriedly shouted.
Everyone looked up at the man and woman in the air.
Ming Sihan was not prepared at all when MO Ruyue brought him along.
Fortunately, he was strong enough to stabilize his body.
Otherwise, he might embarrass himself..
Chapter 853 - 853: Intimate
Chapter 853 - 853: Intimate
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyuended safely with Ming Sihan. The guards ran in and surrounded them.
l told you, were here to save people.
Youre dying our rescue.
Mo Ruyue said helplessly.
At this moment, a few guards pushed out two infected people.
The two men begged.
This was because once they left the safe zone, they would be killed or be the living dead.
Everyone looked in that direction. The guard thought for a moment and looked at Mo Ruyue. Didnt you say you were here to save someone?
Thats right.
MO Ruyue nodded and pulled her hand out of Ming Sihans big palm.
There are two infected people over there. You should save them.
The guard captain felt that he could expose this womans lie at night.
Whether or not he knew how to save people, he would know after two patients came.
MO Ruyue had already guessed that this guard would let her do this.
She walked towards the two infected men with her head held high.
Ming Sihan followed closely beside MO Ruyue. He naturally had to face this kind of situation with MO Ruyue.
The two mens bodies were already beginning to fester.
MO Ruyue took out a medicine bottle and poured out two pills.
If the two of you want to live, take this pill.
The two infected men did not hesitate and took the pills.
They had no other choice.
He was going to die anyway. Perhaps he might have a chance after taking these pills.
The two men took the pills.
The people around them watched the changes between the two men closely.
A momentter, the two men clutched their stomachs in pain.
Thats poison!
When the guard captain saw this situation, his expression turned cold as he stared at the woman in front of him.
It was poison!
Then, the two men spat out a mouthful of blood, and their stomachs no longer hurt.
Its the antidote! Its really the antidote. I feel like my entire body is free.
I felt it too!
The two men cried tears of joy.
They had thought that they were going to die.
Thus, the two of them kowtowed to MO Ruyue and said gratefully, Thank you, Divine Doctor. Thank you, Divine Doctor.
Im willing to work for the divine doctor!
Seeing the two men fully recovered, MO Ruyue felt gratified. He Xi was really amazing.
The medicine really cured the disease.
No need to thank me. The person who developed this antidote is a divine doctor called He Xi.!
Mo Ruyue did not dare to take credit for herself.
This was the antidote that He Xi had developed day and night for a long time.
Without He Xi, more people would have lost their lives.
If these people wanted to thank him, they should thank He Xi. He Xi? I think Ive heard of that divine doctors name before.
So it was Miracle Doctor He Xi who saved us!
Seeing this, the guard captain revealed an embarrassed smile.
She quickly apologized. Im sorry. 1 almost thought you were bad people.
Its okay. I dont me you.
MO Ruyue smiled and asked curiously,By the way, do you have a doctor nerer
Yes, yes, yes. Please follow me.
The guard captain regarded the man and woman in front of him as their saviors.
As long as there was an antidote, there would be no need to worry about people contracting the gue in the future,
They were saved and no longer had to worry or be afraid.
There were many physicians in the city, so MO Ruyue asked the captain of the guards to gather all the physicians.
After all the doctors had arrived, MO Ruyue took out the prescription.
He said to the doctors, This is the prescription to solve the gue. Take a look and see if you can concoct the medicine.
The doctors took a prescription and browsed through it one by one.
There were even doctors who took out pen, ink, and paper to copy down the exact prescription.
l have all the herbs in this prescription in my medicine hall.
An old doctor said.
MO Ruyue nodded. Then you can use this prescription to cure the gue in the future.
Alright.
The doctors all agreed.
One of the doctors stood up and asked curiously,Miss, could it be that you developed this prescription?
MO Ruyue shook her head and said, This is not a prescription that I developed. It was developed by a miracle doctor called He Xi. He used this prescription to help everyone tide over this crisis.
Oh, 1 see. This Divine Doctor He Xi is really a deity who can save all living beings.
After the gue in the city was solved, MO Ruyue was ready to go to the next ce with Ming Sihan.
The gue spread very quickly, and many cities were suffering from the gue.
Therefore, MO Ruyue and Ming Sihan did not waste too much time.
However, when they were leaving, they met Ling Shoumo again.
Ling Shoumo looked at her interlocked hands and felt his heart tighten.
Their fingers were interlocked!
Enemies really meet on a narrow road.
Mo Ruyue muttered softly. She saw Ling Shoumo when she came here, but she had changed her route when she left, but she still bumped into Ling Shoumo.
Just thinking about it made him feel depressed.
You dont want to see him, do you?
At this moment, Ming Sihans voice rang in her ears.
MO Ruyue hummed in a low voice.
Thus, Ming Sihan pulled MO Ruyue into his arms, and the distance between the two of them became even closer.
He carried MO Ruyue and flew away.
Ji Xianfeng pursed his lips when he saw this scene. Junior Sister Ruyue and the demon lord seemed to have a special rtionship.
He turned around and looked at his master. He walked over and asked,Master, all the living corpses in this city have been killed. Should we go to the next ce?
Ling Shoumo came back to his senses, and his expression didnt look too good.
Yes, its time to go to the next ce.
He followed behind Ming Sihan and MO Ruyue.
He brought arge group of immortal sect disciples.
The disciples of the Celestial Gate were left far behind by Ling Shoumo.
Master, what happened? Dont you know that were slower?
Who knows? She was fine before she came. Now, if shes not careful, she might lose him.
Aiyo, I cant take it anymore. I have tond on the ground and have a good rest.
The disciples of the immortal sect were miserable. They could not keep up with their masters speed at all.
Ji Xianfeng saw that his disciples weregging behind, so he quickly stopped and urged,Everyone, dont dy. Its dangerous to fall behind.
Second senior brother, you know our strength. I cant keep up with the speed of the team at all.
Second senior brother, let us rest behind. We will catch up.
Other than these two, there were three others who could not fly anymore.
Ji Xianfeng thought about it and said to Ye Xiong,Sixth Junior Brother, stay with them.
Ye Xiong was stronger than his junior brothers.
He felt more at ease letting Ye Xiong stay here.
Alright, Second Senior Brother.
Ye Xiong responded. He was actually exhausted as well.
They did not know what was wrong with their master. His speed was so fast that he really did not care about their feelings.
MO Ruyue and Ming Sihan arrived at the next city.
However, not long after they arrived, Ling Shoumo also arrived.
Master, we seem to have been followed by him.
MO Ruyue turned her head to take a look and happened to meet the mans gaze.
Frightened, MO Ruyue hurriedly turned around.
Was Ling Shoumo crazy? Why was he always following them?
Chapter 854 - 854: Knowledge Is My Property
Chapter 854 - 854: Knowledge Is My Property
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ming Sihan stopped in his tracks and turned around to look at Ling Shoumo. He asked unhappily, What? The dignified master of a mystic spirit actually liked to follow behind others like a dog?
Ming Sihan, dont be so harsh. Im here to kill the living dead!
Ling Shoumos face darkened.
Seeing the two of them getting close, he felt unhappy.
Originally, MO Ruyue should have been his woman.
Now, she could only watch MO Ruyue and Ming Sihan get together.
Noticing that the atmosphere between the two of them was a little off, MO Ruyue quickly stepped forward to stop the situation from developing in a more serious direction.
With the enemy in front of them, it was not good to have internal strife.
She held Ming Sihans hand and said,Master, lets go. We dont have to worry about him.
Ming Sihan lowered his head and nced at MO Ruyue. He knew MO Ruyues painstaking efforts.
If it werent for the fact that he was facing a great enemy, he and Ling Shoumo would have had to fight.
MO Ruyue pulled Ming Sihan away.
Just like that, the two of them went to one city after another.
He Xis prescription was left in almost all the cities.
After half a month, the gue brought by the demons was stabilized.
They were no longer afraid of people being infected by the gue. Even if they were infected by the gue, they could still be saved.
When the demons heard that the gue had been defeated by the humans, they instantly flew into a rage.
The gue he brought was so easily defeated?
Those ignorant people must think that he was easy to deal with.
Thinking of this, the evil spirit was furious.
Moreover, the invincible walking corpses were also killed by those people from the immortal sects.
Evil Demons couldnt be defeated so easily.
Since that was the case, he would capture all the powerful people in this world and make them his prisoners.
No one knew that the demons were about tounch a new round of terrifying attacks.
However, this time, they were not targeting the weakmoners, but all the powerful people in this world.
MO Ruyue and Ming Sihan met up with He Xi and MO Chengfeng.
How are things on your side?
He Xi saw MO Ruyue and Ming Sihan and could not help but ask.
Looking at their intimate actions, could it be that MO Ruyue knew about Ming Sihans feelings and epted them?
His eyes darted back and forth between the two of them.
The pills you gave me have all been used up, and the prescription has been sent to most of the cities.
MO Ruyue replied.
This time, she went to many ces with Ming Sihan and saw a lot of peoples ways of the world, as well as life and death parting.
Sometimes, just because they were a stepte, someone would be separated from their wife and children.
She heard her wife and children crying and feeling helpless.
If only she had arrived earlier.
We are about the same. Now that the gue in all the cities is almost under control, I can go back and sleep in peace.
These days, he basically did not close his eyes to rest.
If they werent saving people, they were on the way to saving people.
Now, are we going back to the Demon Realm?
MO Ruyue turned to look at Ming Sihan. She blinked her eyes and her eyshes curled up like a fan.
Ming Sihan looked at the girl beside him staring at him, and his heart suddenly started beating faster.
Why are her eyes so beautiful?
She was so deeply attracted that she even forgot to look away.
Master?
Seeing that the man was silent, MO Ruyue shook Ming Sihans hand.
Ming Sihan came back to his senses and coughed lightly. Clearly, he hadnt heard what MO Ruyue had just said.
What?
Ming Sihan asked. He was entranced because Ruyue was pretty.
Now, he felt that Ruyue was getting more and more beautiful.
It made people reluctant to look away.
Such a beautiful woman should be hidden in the house and not let anyone covet her.
Of course, this thought only shed across his mind.
Ruyue was like a little bird that liked to fly freely.
He would not lock the bird in a cage for him to admire. As long as the bird knew how to go home, it would be fine.
It didnt matter if he didnt want to go home. He could catch the bird himself.
MO Ruyue was speechless.
He said slowly, I say, shouldnt we return to the Demon Realm?
Now that everyone had a prescription and the gue was under control, there was almost nothing for them to do here.
Yes, its time to return to the Demon Realm. But if Ruyue wants to go somewhere to y? Ill apany you.
There werent many things to do in the Demon Realm, so he had time to y with Ruyue.
It all depended on Ruyue.
MO Ruyue thought for a moment. After wandering around outside for so long, she didnt have anything she wanted to do.
Shaking his head, he said, Lets go back. I miss Zeyan and Hillghost a little.
What do they have to miss? They can eat and drink well in the Demon Realm.
Ming Sihan said with some jealousy.
Li Zeyan and Hillghost were probably having a good time in the Demon Realm.
Zeyan is just my younger brother. Are you jealous of my younger brother? There was no need to talk about Ghostly Ghost. That was my little pet.
MO Ruyues lips twitched. This man was jealous.
l dont care.
Cant I be jealous of my younger brother?
Cant I be jealous of pets?
Ming Sihan thought in his heart,l love to be jealous, the king of jealousy in the demon world!
MO Ruyue had never seen such an unreasonable Demon Venerable.
For a moment, he didnt know what to say.
He Xi looked at the two of them and sighed. Ming Sihan finally took the first step bravely.
Ruyue, he said, I see that youre talented and have amazing bones. Why dont you be my disciple?
Looking at Ming Sihans gloomy face, He Xi didnt stop but continued to provoke him.
Ruyue, youll get a lot of benefits if you be my disciple. In the future, Ill give you all my assets!
MO Ruyues eyes lit up when she heard that she would be given all the assets.
Really?
How can I lie in front of the Demon Lord?
He Xi slightly raised his chin, his face serious.
MO Ruyue was tempted. A dignified Divine Doctor should have a lot of assets, right?
I
Ruyue!
Ming Sihan stopped MO Ruyue from finishing her sentence, his face full of displeasure.
Master, He Xi is willing to give me all of his assets, MO Ruyue whispered.
Isnt it enough for me to give it to you?
Isnt this the more the better?
MO Ruyue whispered.
Looking at this woman in front of him, Ming Sihan felt both love and hate.
He red angrily at He Xi. Was this guy deliberately here to cause trouble? He Xi, where did you get your assets?
Ming Sihan asked coldly.
If He Xi had more than 1000 taels of silver, he would lose.
Knowledge is priceless. Knowledge is my property.
He Xi chuckled.
He didnt have any gold, silver, or jewelry, but he did have a lot of medical skills.
He Xi, are you kidding me? MO Ruyue asked.
To think that she still believed in He Xia
Im not ying with you. With me, my property is the means to treat illnesses.
Then you should leave all these assets to Zeyan.
MO Ruyue smiled and declined tactfully.
MO Chengfeng watched everything silently. It was good that Ruyue could be considerate.
Although he was still a little upset, he was now Ruyues brother.
In the future, the Demon Lord would have to call him brother.
This seniority, this status, it had increased in an instant.
The four of them set off together to return to the Demon Realm..
Chapter 855 - 855: Cooking Personally
Chapter 855 - 855: Cooking Personally
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Halfway there, the entire sky was covered by darkness. The sunlight disappeared, and so did the blue sky and white clouds.
All that was left for everyone was endless darkness. MO Ruyue raised her head and frowned. What are the demons up to now?
l dont know. Lets return to the Demon Realm first.
A bad feeling shed across Ming Sihans heart.
Now, he could only return to the Demon Realm and wait and see.
The group returned to the Demon Realm and found traces of destruction.
When Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin saw MO Ruyue and the others return, they hurriedly went up to them.
Wee, Demon Venerable.
The two of them spoke in unison.
Ming Sihan nodded slightly, nced at the copsed building beside him, and asked,What happened in the Demon Realm?
Ye Yunfeng replied,During this period of time, there were monsters who wanted to invade our Demon Realm. These buildings were all destroyed by those monsters.
Fortunately, they guarded the Demon Realm and did not let the Demon Realm be upied by those monsters.
Otherwise, when the Demon Venerable returned to the Demon Realm, it would be the world of the demons.
Hearing Ye Yunfengs words, Ming Sihan said, Thank you for your hard work.
No, its not hard. This is what I should do.
Ye Yunfengs entire person was somewhat unable to react.
The Demon Venerable actually said that it had been hard on them.
If this was in the past, the Demon Lord would not have said such words.
That was why Ye Yunfeng found it inconceivable.
It was simply shocking.
The demon seemed to have be gentler, knowing how to be considerate of his subordinates.
What changed the cold and unreasonable Demon Lord?
In the span of a few breaths, Ye Yunfeng thought of many, many things in his heart.
When Li Zeyan and Hillghost saw Mo Ruyue, they quickly ran over.
Big sister.
Squeak, squeak, squeak
Hillghost and Li Zeyan ran to MO Ruyue at the same time.
Sister, Zeyan misses you so much.
Li Zeyan was about to hug MO Ruyue, but he was stopped by an arm.
Ming Sihans face was cold. If you want to talk, then talk. No hugging!
Why was this Li Zeyan always touching her?
It was very unpleasant.
Im hugging my sister, not you. Li Zevan muttered unhappily.
Ming Sihans face was filled with pride. He held MO Ruyue in his arms and said,Your sister is mine.
You
Li Zeyan was furious when he saw this.
These stinky men were always coveting his sister.
You what? If you dont believe me, you can ask your sister.
MO Ruyue had no choice but to express her stance.
She was the Demon Lords person, and the Demon Lord was also her person.
Li Zeyan was inexplicably fed a mouthful of dog food.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin looked at each other. Ruyue and the demon lord were together?
It looked like that was indeed the case.
Hillghost didnt understand the rtionship between men and women, so he didnt feel sad.
Anyway, it would be very happy to see its master.
Li Zeyan was sad.
At this time, Ye Yunfeng changed the topic. He really didnt want to eat this dog food.
Demon Venerable, why did the sky suddenly turn dark? Do we need to make any preparations?
Ye Yunfeng was somewhat worried.
Once the sky turned dark, it was as dark as night.
He had already ordered people to lightnterns in the surroundings so that he could see everything clearly.
Ming Sihan didnt know how to respond.
His understanding of demons was recorded in books from 300 years ago. Moreover, not all demons were the same. Some were formed from resentment, while others were formed from obsession. This time, he did not know what kind of evil spirit it was.
Lets wait and see.
Ming Sihan said slowly.
If the sky was always dark, then the flowers and trees might die.
The crops would not survive.
People would still not be able to survive.
He turned back to look at MO Ruyue and asked with concern,Are you tired?
A little.
Are you cold? A little. Are you hungry?
A little.
Alright, go rest first. Ill make you something to eat. When everyone saw this scene, they were deeply stimted.
The demon was actually asking about Ruyue.
Was this really that swift and decisive, unrestrained Demon Venerable?
MO Chengfeng and He Xi had already gotten used to it, so they didnt find it strange to see such a scene.
Only Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin were deeply shocked.
Was this really the Demon Venerable?
It felt as if the Demon Lord had changed into a different person.
This was too gentle.
Simply, simply indescribable.
No, no, Ill cook myself.
When MO Ruyue thought of this mans culinary skills, she still felt a lingering fear.
In fact, it didnt matter whether Ming Sihan knew how to cook or not. What was important was that he had the heart to cook.
She would only treat others with her own sincerity if they treated her sincerely.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Ming Sihan said unhappily,Ruyue, are you disgusted by my culinary skills? How can that be? Your cooking skills are great!
MO Ruyue lied through her teeth.
But I think you dislike my cooking, so you dont want me to cook for you. Hearing the mans straightforward usation, MO Ruyue coughed lightly.
Fortunately, this man had some self-awareness. Its not like that. I just dont want you to be too tired.
Why dont we cook together?
MO Ruyue made a concession.
Although this mans cooking was not good, he was very thoughtful.
How could she hurt such a thoughtful man?
Nowadays, it was rare for a man to take the initiative to help cook. Since ancient times, many men believed that women should cook, as if cooking was something that women were born to know.
Especially in the modern era, there were still many people who had such old-fashioned thoughts.
In ancient times, it was reasonable for women to take care of their husbands and raise their children, for men to earn money outside, and for women to cook at home.
However, in modern times, women and men were both earning money outside. When they got home from work, the cooking work was still done by the woman. Werent the two of them working together?
MO Ruyue knew how to cook, but she didnt like to cook every day.
She was quite touched that Ming Sihan took the initiative to cook for her.
A dignified Demon Venerable had lowered himself to cook. This was full of details and thoughts.
Because he could totally leave the cooking to someone else.
However, he did not do so.
Alright then. If theres anything you need, just let me know.
Ming Sihan secretly made up his mind that he must improve his culinary skills.
Hence, the two of them walked towards the kitchen.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin were stunned on the spot, unable to regain their senses for a long time.
After a long time, they finally recovered from their shock.
Ye Junlin looked at MO Chengfeng and asked,Senior Brother MO, was that man really the Demon Lord?
So patient, so considerate, so gentle.
He had never seen such a demon. Its the real deal.
MO Chengfeng said indifferently.
Ye Yunfeng also said thoughtfully, What caused the Demon Lord to be like this?
It should be love.
He Xi nodded slightly, his face full of smiles.
Very good, Ming Sihan had Ruyue before he went into heat, so he didnt have to worry about this guy going into heat in the future.
Demonic beasts like the ck Dragon could kill anyone regardless of race or gender when they were in heat.
Because of this, he was worried about himself, worried that he would be Ming Sihans target.
Now, he could finally rx.
None of this would have happened.
He Xi whistled briskly. She was in a good mood..
Chapter 856 - 856: This Is The Demon World!
Chapter 856 - 856: This Is The Demon World!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Li Zeyan wanted to cry but had no tears. His sister had been kidnapped.
And he had no way to stop it.
This was because her sister was willing. If she was unwilling, she would not let the Demon Lord take her away.
He Xi looked back at Li Zeyan and said, Disciple, hurry up and follow me.
Master!
Li Zeyan followed, feeling a little down.
Dont be sad. You should be happy that sister has a home.
Im not happy. Sister doesnt need a home at all. I can stay by her side for the rest of my life.
Hey, you cant say that. You think your sister doesnt need it, but what if your sister thinks she does?
Thats why I didnt stop you. If you werent willing, I would have stopped you long ago.
Li Zeyan said angrily.
That was his sisters choice. He would not stop her. Hows your memorization of the medical book going these days?
He Xi changed the topic so as not to make this guy sad.
Li Zeyan lowered his head and nced at Hillghost, who was following beside him.
He suddenly felt that he and Hillghost were so pitiful. They were both demon beasts that no one wanted.
They were left out.
Ive already memorized it thoroughly. Li Zeyan snorted, his face gloomy. Then let me test you.
Sure,
The two of them walked in the direction of the Demon Pce.
Mo Chengfeng also prepared to go back and rest. This time, he had a narrow escape.
Without He Xi, he might not have been able to return to the Devil World.
Fortunately, everything was a false rm.
Brother, the power of love is so magical.Ye Junlin was deep in thought.
Love could actually make the demon so gentle.
It was hard to believe that the Demon Venerable, who made people tremble with fear, could be so gentle.
l think so too.
Ye Yunfeng shrugged.
MO Ruyue and Ming Sihan were cooking in the kitchen.
He Xi, Li Zeyan, and Hillghost stood at the door.
Can you let me have a meal too?
He Xi chuckled and asked in a negotiating tone.
Of course you can.
Of course not.
The one who answered yes was MO Ruyue, and the one who answered no was Ming Sihan.
Hearing the two people talking in different voices, He Xi couldnt help but smile and said: The two of you really dont have a tacit understanding.
Ah Ming, I think Ruyues words carry more weight than yours, so I think you should listen to Ruyue.
Ming Sihans face darkened and he spat out a word in an ungraceful manner.
Get lost!
Ah, this
He Xi still refused to give up and said,Are you opposing Ruyues words?
He couldnt even freeload on food. Ming Sihan was too stingy.
He wasnt so stingy before!
l didnt object to what Ruyue said. I just didnt want to freeload for you. Ming Sihan said coldly.
Ah Ming, you cant be like this. Youve forgotten about your brothers just because you have a woman?
They had been brothers for so many years, yet they couldnt even get a meal.
Just thinking about it made her feel that Ming Sihan was too stingy.
He Xi smelled the fragrance of the stir-fried dishes and almost drooled.
He continued, Ah Ming, do you know that what youre doing is not ssy?
Youre just being petty. Girls nowadays like generous men. Ruyue wont like
you.
Hearing He Xis noisy voice, Ming Sihan became a little impatient.
Ruyue, do all girls like generous men?
Ming Sihan looked at MO Ruyue for confirmation.
Was this true?
MO Ruyue was stunned for a moment, then said thoughtfully,Generally speaking, girls do like generous men, but this generosity is limited to the girl herself.
Girls liked men who were generous to themselves, not men who were generous to others.
She hated men who were generous to others but stingy to themselves. Hearing MO Ruyues words, Ming Sihan seemed to understand something.
So, you wont be angry if Im not generous to He Xi, right?
You can put it that way, MO Ruyue said as she nced at He Xi.
The corner of He Xis mouth twitched. Ming Sihan really didnt hide anything.
Was it destined that he wouldnt be able to get a free meal today?
Actually, Li Zeyans cooking was not bad, but he personally felt that MO Ruyues was better.
At this moment, MO Ruyue suddenly changed the topic. Lets not be stingy. Let them freeload. Theres so much anyway, we cant finish it.
At the door, He Xi kept nodding her head. Ruyues words were more pleasant to the ears.
What did Ming Sihan say? It was not something a human could say.
Ruyue was indeed beautiful and kind.
You guys are lucky.
Ming Sihan nced at the two people and one ghost at the door.
It was not that he was stingy, but he wanted to be alone with Ruyue. If someone was around, it would ruin the atmosphere.
Therefore, he was naturally unhappy to see He Xi and the others.
This guy had no vision at all and was in the way.
Ming Sihan looked at He Xi, who was eating like she was fighting a war, and suddenly lost his appetite.
He Xi, you havent eaten before?
Its delicious. Why cant you let people eat more?
He Xi spoke vaguely, and there was still food in her mouth.
MO Ruyue looked at He Xis expression. This guy had really ruined her handsome face.
She was so good-looking, but she ate so ferociously.
The difference between his appearance and his actions was too great.
Hillghost was originally eating on the chair, but in the end, he jumped onto the table and started eating.
Li Zeyan, on the other hand, looked better at eating.
It wasnt elegant, but at least it wasnt that ferocious.
The sky outside was still dark, and there were many candles lit in the room.
Only then was it barely able to illuminate the surroundings.
After the meal, Li Zeyan and Hillghost stayed behind to clean up the mess.
Meanwhile, MO Ruyue was preparing to take a shower and rest.
At this moment, a voice came from outside.
Ruyue, Li Zeyan.
Li Zeyan had just finished washing the dishes and felt that the voice was a little familiar.
Frowning, he walked out.
At this moment, Di Chenxiao was stopped by Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin.
Looking at the man in front of them, Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin both felt that he was somewhat familiar, as if they had seen him somewhere before.
After some thought, he recalled that he had seen this man when the demon brought Ruyue back.
Ye Junlin stopped Di Chenxiao and asked,Who are you? What are you doing here?
They did not know the identity of this man.
Di Chenxiao looked at the two of them and found them familiar. Heughed heartily and said,I came here to look for Li Zeyan and my savior, MO Ruyue.
This is the Demon Realm!
Ye Yunfeng reminded.
The man in front of him might not be weak.
As for how strong he was, he did not know.
l know this is the Devil World, you dont have to emphasize it.
l also know that you are just subordinates and I dont want to force my way in and make things difficult for you.
Di Chenxiao smiled and spoke politely.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin looked at each other.
In the end, Ye Junlin said,Brother, you stay here and watch him. Ill go and tell Ruyue.
Okay, go ahead.
Ye Yunfeng nodded and watched Ye Junlin leave.
Di Chenxiao was not in a hurry. He sat on a rock beside him and waited for the person he wanted to see to appear. After a while, Li Zeyan appeared.
Why are you here?
Li Zeyan frowned when he saw Di Chenxiao.
Why did this guy suddenlye here?
Naturally, Im here to see you.
Di Chenxiaos eyes were filled with a yful smile. He stood up and walked towards Li Zeyan..
Chapter 857 - 857: A Wolf’s Scent
Chapter 857 - 857: A Wolfs Scent
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Li Zeyan spat, then hid behind Ye Yunfeng and warned, Di Chenxiao, dont get too close to me.
Why?
Di Chenxiao pretended to be sad.
Because I hate you.
He hated people who tried to snatch his sister away from him.
Di Chenxiao was the same.
l hate you, but you still came out to see me? Little thing, you dont mean what you say.
Di Chenxiao slightly raised his eyebrows. This Li Zeyan in front of him was not honest at all.
Li Zeyan clenched his fists.
What are you doing here?
Instead of being the wolf king of the northern wolf n, this guy actually ran to the demon world.
Was he chased out by the wolf n?
l naturally have something important to do here.
Di Chenxiaoughed and continued, We havent seen each other for so long. Did you miss me?
Im sorry. Im not familiar with you, so I dont have time to think about you.
Li Zeyan realized that this mans skin was extraordinarily thick.
It wasparable to a city wall.
After MO Ruyue finished showering, she heard Ye Junlins voice.
Hence, she hurriedly left.
Senior Brother Jun Lin, whats wrong?
Ye Junlin looked at MO Ruyue, whose hair was still wet. He coughed lightly and said, Theres a man called Di Chenxiao outside the Demon Realm. He wants to see you.
Di Chenxiao?
MO Ruyue was stunned. Why would that guye to the Devil Realm?
Lets go and take a look.
Ruyue, your hair hasnt dried yet.
Ye Junlin looked at MO Ruyues hair and couldnt help but remind her.
MO Ruyue didnt seem to mind at all. It would be great if they were in the modern era, with a hairdryer.
It could only dry here.
Its fine. The wind will blow.
The two of them walked out.
Outside the Devil World, she saw Di Chenxiao talking to Li Zeyan.
When Di Chenxiao saw MO Ruyue, he said happily,Ruyue, Im here to devote myself to you.
The moment these words came out, Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin, the two brothers, were shocked.
The two brothers looked at each other in shock. What was going on?
This man actually wanted to marry Ruyue.
If the Demon Lord found out about this, wouldnt he chop this man into pieces?
Li Zeyan immediately retorted, Dream on. He actually wanted to marry her!
Dont even think about it, theres no chance!
MO Ruyue held her forehead helplessly. Was this man done?
She ignored what Di Chenxiao said and said seriously, Didnt you go back to the North? Why are you here?
Ive been back to the north for a long time. Ive also cleaned up the wolf tribe. Di Chenxiao said seriously and put away his cynicism.
Ever since he parted ways with MO Ruyue, he had been heading north and had sessfully returned to the wolf tribe in the north.
When those traitors saw him, they all revealed shocked expressions.
He never expected that he would be able to return alive.
He did not let off any of those who had tried to harm him.
They had paid a painful price.
Alright, thats pretty fast.
MO Ruyue thought for a moment. That was several months ago.
This guys methods of handling things were quite fast.
Di Chenxiao shook his head. Its already very slow. You almost never saw me again.
Hmph, I dont want to see you.
Li Zeyan snorted, This guy wanted to snatch his sister away. He was really too evil.
He was as bad as the Demon Lord.
No, the demon was even worse. He actually hugged his sister and held her hand.
Each of these men was more despicable than thest.
Di Chenxiao listened to Li Zeyans words and smiled.
Didnt she stille over eagerly even if she didnt want to see him?
What a two-faced little thing.
Is there something important you came here for?
MO Ruyue asked as she sized up Di Chenxiao.
l came to seek refuge in the Demon Realm. The forces of the demons have already infiltrated this world.
Moreover, I heard that many sect masters of immortal sects have been captured by demons.
Di Chenxiaos expression became serious.
Although the sect master of the immortal sect had nothing to do with him, this gave him a signal.
The evil spirit made a new move.
Hearing this, evervones expression turned grave, except for Li Zevan.
Because Li Zeyan didnt care about the evil spirit, he looked at Di Chenxiao unhappily.
So, youre going to stay in the Demon Realm in the future, right?
Li Zeyan pursed his lips and his eyes turned cold.
Of course. We came here specially to seek refuge in the Demon Realm. 1 didnt go to so many immortal sects because I couldnt bear to part with you and
Ruyue.
Di Chenxiao winked at Li Zeyan.
Li Zeyans mouth twitched slightly.Hurry up and leave. Youre not wee here.
Im not leaving.
Anyway, I wont let you in.
Its okay. I can stay outside.
Di Chenxiao smiled and didnt care.
This made Li Zeyan furious.
She had never seen such a shameless man.
Without the Demon Commanders orders, we cant let you in.
Ye Yunfeng spoke with a solemn expression.
This fellow actually wanted to devote his body to Ruyue. He would probably never have the chance to enter the Demon Realm in his lifetime. After all, the Demon Lord would not leave him with another love rival.
It was already very good that he did not kill this guy.
Its fine. I can stay outside.
Di Chenxiao smiled.
MO Ruyue looked at Di Chenxiao. This guy hade all the way here. It was not proper for him to stay outside the Devil World.
Thus, MO Ruyue said to Ye Yunfeng,Senior brother, arrange a ce for him to stay. I will talk to the demon.
Ruyue is the best.
When Di Chenxiao heard MO Ruyues words, he immediately beamed with joy.
As expected, Ruyue was the most reliable no matter where she was.
He even nced at Li Zeyan with a smug look in his eyes.
When Ye Yunfeng saw this, he could only agree.
Oh right, help me arrange to stay with Brother Zeyan! r
Why do you want to live with me?
Li Zeyan widened his eyes in displeasure.
Di Chenxiao said, I dont know anyone else in the Demon Realm except you and Ruyue. I want to live with Ruyue, but shes not willing. So, I can only live with you. You wont reject me, right?
I refuse. You can sleep with someone else, but dont sleep with me!
Li Zeyan immediately refuted. This Di Chenxiao was thinking very well. He was dreaming!
Im not sleeping, Im staying. Youre so young, how can I bear to sleep with you?
Di Chenxiao replied with a smile.
This Li Zeyan was a little cute.
Ye Yunfeng looked at the two of them and suggested,Why dont we arrange for you to stay next door to Zeyan?
Di Chenxiao seemed to have a good rtionship with Li Zeyan.
l dont want to.
Sure.
Li Zeyan objected, but Di Chenxiao agreed.
Di Chenxiao nced at Li Zeyan and said,Im just living next door to you, not sleeping with you. Why are you so against it? Because the air smells like a wolf when I live with you!
Wolf smell? Am I very coquettish?
Di Chenxiao sniffed the air, but he didnt smell like a wolf.
His gaze turned towards Ye Yunfeng and asked,Do you smell the scent of wolves?
Ive only heard of foxes, not wolves.
Ye Yunfeng replied coldly.
Then, she said to Di Chenxiao,Lets go. Come with me.
Thank you.
Di Chenxiao thanked him.
Li Zeyan had no room to object at all, because this was the territory of the Demon Realm, not his territory.
Therefore, he had no right to speak.
If this was his territory, Di Chenxiao would have been kicked out long ago..
Chapter 858 - 858: Peeing the Bed
Chapter 858 - 858: Peeing the Bed
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Whats wrong? MO Ruyue asked as she nced at the unhappy Li Zeyan.
That guy is really annoying!
Li Zeyan said in disdain. He had not forgotten the days when Di Chenxiao had fought with him for favor.
Of all ces, you have to live with me!
Maybe hes more familiar with you than the others, so he wants to live with you?
MO Ruyue thought for a moment and said seriously.
Di Chenxiao had traveled thousands of miles to the Demon Realm, so he really shouldnt let her live outside.
Sister, dont worry. I wont beat him up, Li Zeyan said, not wanting to worry
MO Ruyue.
Ye Yunfeng arranged for Di Chenxiao to be next door to Li Zeyan.
He specially instructed, This used to be Ruyues ce. Now that Ruyue has gone to live in the Demon Pce, this ce is empty. You can stay here from now on.
The ce where Ruyue used to live? Its pretty good. Thank you for your trouble, brother.
When Di Chenxiao heard that this was the ce where Ruyue had lived, he immediately felt very satisfied.
As expected of the ce where Ruyue had stayed before, there was actually a faint fragrance in the room.
He was very satisfied with this ce.
Then Ill be leaving first. If theres anything you dont understand, you can ask Li Zeyan.
Alright, take care, brother.
Di Chenxiao nodded and watched Ye Yunfeng leave. Ye Yunfeng had just left when Li Zeyan followed behind.
Where do you live?
Li Zeyan looked at the white-haired man with disdain.
Oh, I was arranged to stay in Ruyues room. How lucky.
Di Chenxiao looked happy.
However, when Li Zeyan heard these words, he immediately exploded.
What is it? You actually..
You actually want to stay in my sisters room!
Li Zeyan couldnt ept this reality, and his face was filled with shock.
The hands by his side clenched into fists.
His tender face was filled with anger.
Whats wrong with me living here? Isnt this next door to you? Its quite close.
Di Chenxiao said as he pushed open the door and walked in.
He wanted to see what was going on inside,
You cant go in, Li Zeyan pulled him back with a solemn expression.
Why cant I go in?
Anyway, you cant go in. This is my bedroom.
Li Zeyan held Di Chenxiaos arm tightly.
Since he dared to stay in his sisters room, he would throw Di Chenxiao out.
Ruyue doesnt live here,
It doesnt matter if sister lives here or not, you cant live here!
Arent you a little too overbearing?
If youre not convinced, get lost.
Li Zeyan said angrily as he looked up at the man in front of him.
Di Chenxiao didnt step forward. Instead, he pinched Li Zeyans cheeks with both hands and tugged at them. Look at your angry face. Its so vivid.
Let me go!
Why did this man always like to touch her?
She pinched his face again.
Li Zeyan swatted Di Chenxiaos hand away.
How despicable!
This is my sisters room, Li Zeyan said loudly. You cant stay here.
Di Chenxiao crossed his arms and looked at Li Zeyan as if he was looking at a child. He felt that Li Zeyan was a little funny.
Wasnt this just a child who hadnt grown up?
If I dont live here, then where should I live? You have to give me a ce to stay, right?
He raised his eyebrows and smiled.
You can sleep anywhere other than here. It doesnt matter if its in the courtyard or on the road outside. In short, you cant sleep here.
Li Zeyan snorted.
He was afraid that his sister wouldnte back to stay after Di Chenxiao slept here.
Therefore, he had to be stopped.
Courtyard? On the way? Brother Zeyan, were old acquaintances. Are you going to treat me like this?
Di Chenxiao raised his eyebrows slightly.
She couldnt believe that Zeyans younger brother would say this.
Heh, Im already being polite to you!
If it wasnt for the fact that he didnt want to expose his identity, he would definitely teach Di Chenxiao a lesson. Did he really think that he was a child?
Dont joke around!
He was not a child!
Why dont I sleep in your room?
You cant.
Because I despise you.
Thats boring, Di Chenxiao sighed.
No, that wont do either. Dont tell me hes sleeping in the yard or on the road?
Was this guy that heartless?
Li Zeyan snorted, showing his attitude.
Hillghost watched the show from the side.
This was their business and had nothing to do with it. It could sleep anywhere.
Li Zeyan and Di Chenxiao were still in a deadlock.
Oh, right. The sky shouldnt be dark at this time. Di Chenxiao suddenly thought of something.
The sky was dark now because of the evil spirits.
No one could get sunlight.
Nothing would happen if there was no sunlight for a short period of time.
If there was no sunlight for a long time, the world would definitely undergo earth- shattering changes.
However, he was fine now. It was just right to lie on the bed and rest.
I dont care, I have to sleep in Ruyues room and yours. Di Chenxiao turned around and went to the room next door.
Li Zeyans room was next door.
When Li Zeyan saw this, he quickly chased after her.
Di Chenxiao, thats my room. You cant stay there either.
This is not up to you.
Di Chenxiao pushed open the door and strode towards the bed.
He walked to the bed and sniffed.
Brother Zeyan, no wonder youre so vehemently against me staying here. It turns out that you wet the bed.
Di Chenxiaoughed loudly.
It smells like urine!
When Li Zeyan heard this, his face turned ashen.
Dont talk nonsense. I didnt wet the bed!
If you didnt wet the bed, then why does it smell like urine? Di Chenxiao raised his eyebrows slightly and smiled.
He lit the candles in the room, and the light instantly shone.
Wolves had good vision in the dark, but it would be better if there was light.
Smells like urine your head.
Li Zeyan snapped.
Di Chenxiao sat on the bed and heard a creak.
Its alright. Even if its the smell of urine, I dont mind.
With that, hey down on the bed.
Li Zeyan was furious.
He threw two fists at Di Chenxiao.
He couldnt hold it in anymore. He had to teach Di Chenxiao a lesson.
A few fistsnded on Di Chenxiaos body one after another. Did you not eat? Di Chenxiao was silent for a while.
You
Its like a tickle.
Li Zeyan felt that he had been humiliated by Di Chenxiao.
He was already on the verge of breaking down, but in the end, he held back.
If he revealed his true body, who knew what would happen.
At that time, her sister would definitely feel that she had lied to her.
Li Zeyan had no choice but to leave the room as he looked at Di Chenxiao, who looked like a dead pig.
Go to sleep alone!
l dont care. I cant be bothered.
He would go somewhere else to sleep.
demon Pce
MO Ruyue returned to her room and saw a figure in ck as soon as she entered the room.
This really gave her a fright.
Master, why are you in my room?
She saw Ming Sihan sitting on the coffee table, leisurely drinking tea.
Ming Sihan nodded slightly as he watched MO Ruyue walk over.
When MO Ruyue was standing in front of him, Ming Sihan took advantage of her surprise and pulled her into his arms.
Seeing the woman struggle, he held her even harder.
He hugged the woman tightly in his arms..
Chapter 859 - 859: Drawing a Big Pie
Chapter 859 - 859: Drawing a Big Pie
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Mo Ruyue was frightened by this sudden movement. She wanted to struggle, but the more she struggled, the stronger the man became.
In the end, he could only give up struggling.
Master, whats wrong?
MO Ruyue asked.
This guy didnt say a word and buried his head in her neck.
Such behavior was more or less a hooligan. You went out? Ming Sihan asked gloomily.
Yes.
Who came to the Demon Realm?
He seemed to have heard that someone hade to the Demon Realm and was rted to Ruyue.
Di Chenxiao, the Wolf King of the Northern Wolf n, exined MO Ruyue.
Oh right, Ive already asked senior brother to arrange a ce for him to stay in the Demon Realm.
Ming Sihan hugged the fragrant and soft little thing in his arms. He didnt want to let go because it was toofortable to hold.
She hoped that she could continue hugging him like this.
Little disciple, youre getting bolder and bolder. You didnt even discuss this matter with me, he said with a hint of jealousy.
Didnt I tell Master?
MO Ruyue only felt a slight itch in her ear, making her feel a little ufortable.
However, she didnt dare to dodge, or else her cheek would touch Ming Sihans cheek.
It was too torturous.
Youre acting first before reporting. Tell me, how do you want me to punish you?
This, this cant be, right? Is this a punishment? MO Ruyues lips twitched.
Of course. Tell me, how should I punish you?
Ming Sihan turned MO Ruyue!s body around and his deep gaze fell on MO Ruyues red lips.
As their eyes met, MO Ruyue felt a little nervous. Master, I feel so hot. Why dont we talk about punishment next time?
MO Ruyues face turned red and her heart raced.
Especially when he didnt know where to look.
She clearly knew that this man was exuding a cannibal aura, but she had nowhere to hide.
She coughed lightly and wanted to escape.
There wont be a next time.
The mans voice was maic, causing MO Ruyues heart to flutter.
He lowered his head and touched two soft spots.
Entanglement and affection.
Ming Sihan only wanted to touch the surface of the water lightly, but when he touched the warmth, he couldnt help but want more.
All of his rationality was crushed.
At this moment, MO Ruyues mind was nk. After all, it was her first time in a rtionship, so naturally, it was her first kiss.
Her body was a little stiff, and she seemed to have lost control of her limbs. She blinked, and her mind was in a mess.
Close your eyes.
He muttered softly.
MO Ruyue closed her eyes and lost her sight. Her other senses became more obvious.
He was so careful and meticulous.
He seemed to be afraid of hurting her.
He was so gentle, so gentle like water.
The candlelight flickered, and their shadows were cast on the window.
Xuanling immortal sect
Ling Shoumo looked at the scene in the illusion. His eyes were malicious and his face was cold. He waved his hand and the illusion disappeared.
The eyesore disappeared into thin air.
Ming Sihan, MO Ruyue!
They actually
There seemed to be a ck evil aura lingering around him.
Suddenly, the ck evil energy transformed into a Ling Shoumo who looked exactly like him.
Are you angry? It was originally yours, but it ended up in someone elses hands.
Are you angry? MO Ruyue is a woman you didnt even want to look at before, but now yourepletely obedient to her and even want to enjoy her body.
Ling Shoumo, youre really a good-for-nothing. If you want that woman, why dont you bring him back?
l really look down on you!
Shut up! Ling Shoumo shouted when he heard Ling Shoumos words. I was right. Youre so angry from embarrassment. How funny!
Its not your ce toment on my matters.
Ling Shoumo berated.
I am you, and you are me. I am the desire in the depths of your heart. Ling Shoumo, stop suppressing me, because your desire is getting stronger and stronger!
You cant suppress me either, because you want MO Ruyue too much.
Shut up! Ling Shoumo shouted at the man in front of him.
The man burst intoughter.
Ling Shoumo picked up the vase beside him and threw it at the other Ling Shoumo.
The other Ling Shoumo did not miss, and the vase pierced through his body.
Ive said it before. Im the desire in the depths of your heart. You cant defeat me.
He smiled smugly.
At this moment, the disciples patrolling outside heard the voices inside the Seven Stars Hall and could not help but stop in their tracks.
Master! Xin Zhao was leading the team. Xin Zhao stood outside and shouted, Master, are you alright?
If he did not hear wrongly, he seemed to have heard the sound of a vase breaking in the Seven Stars Hall.
What happened?
Im fine!
Ling Shoumo lowered his voice and tried his best to adjust himself.
Finally, after he adjusted his condition, the other Ling Shoumo disappeared.
However, he knew that he did not have the desire to defeat himself, nor did he have the desire to defeat the other Ling Shoumo.
That guy would appear sooner orter.
Xin Zhao was relieved when he heard the voice inside.
He thought that his master was not inside.
demon world
MO Ruyue hid under the nket, the image of the kiss still ying in her mind.
She didnt know why she was so excited.
It was clearly something that made people feel embarrassed, but she was so excited.
That man was really gentle, She did not even bother to calcte how long they had been kissing.
It was only wvhen her brain was deprived of oxygen that the man was willing to let go of her.
Then, she pushed Ming Sihan out and said that she wanted to sleep.
Oh my god, I actually kissed my own master.
MO Ruyue still couldnt believe it. She reached out and touched her lips.
Ming Sihan!s warmth seemed to still remain on it.
She didnt feel any rejection in her heart, which meant that she didnt reject Ming Sihan.
However, it was normal. Ming Sihan was so good-looking. As long as it was a normal woman, how many would reject him? They should be eager to have sex with this man.
No, no!
She was clearly here to start a career. Why did she end up doing it with a man before she finished her career?
Was the direction and goal she was striving for wrong?
MO Ruyue calmed down. Other than men, her goal should also be the position of the Demon Lord.
Although that man had verbally promised to pass the position of Demon Lord to her, who knew if he was just giving her a big pie?
One had to know that the thing men were best at was painting a big picture.
Thinking of this, MO Ruyue didnt seem as excited as before.
Love was just the spice of life. Her career was what she was most concerned about.
She was determined not to be a love-minded woman.
The more she thought about it, the clearer and calmer MO Ruyues mind became. She was no longer as excited as before.
Mo Ruyue opened her eyes. It was pitch-ck outside. She had no idea how long she had slept, but her whole body felt sore.
Why isnt it dawn yet?
She mumbled a few words in a daze, closed her eyes, and fell asleep again.
When she opened her eyes for the second time, her mind was instantly clear. The sky outside had lost the sun because of the evil spirit.
At the thought of this, she immediately turned over and sat up.
This damned demon was always messing around. She washed up briefly and went to look for Ming Sihan..
Chapter 860 - 860: She Didn’t Want to Be a Dragging Back
Chapter 860 - 860: She Didnt Want to Be a Dragging Back
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ming Sihans room door was open. It seemed like he hadnt closed it at night.
However, this was the Demon Realm and the Demon Pce. It didnt matter if they closed the door at night.
Master! MO Ruyue yawned and stood at the door. Master! she shouted.
There was no sound in the room.
MO Ruyue frowned. She walked into the room and found that there was no one else in it.
It was quiet outside.
At first, she wasnt sure if it was morning.
It might be in the middle of the night.
After all, it was dark and she did not have an rm clock, watch, or phone to check the time.
Usually, there were night watchmen, but the day had disappeared. The night watchmen seemed to be unable to tell the time, so they stopped. MO Ruyue couldnt find Ming Sihan, so she had to find He Xi.
Because He Xi lived quite close to her.
It would be more convenient to find Crane Creek.
At this moment, He Xi seemed to be still sleeping.
She stood at the door and could hear the snoring in the room.
It was hard to imagine that a man from Crane Creek could snore.
The snoring was a little loud.
Crane Creek.
MO Ruyue shouted and knocked on the door.
The snoring inside suddenly stopped.
He Xi opened his eyes and yawned.
Who is it? he asked in a low voice.
Its me, Ruyue.
Its sote, but youre still awake. Is there something wrong?
He Xi stood up and walked towards the door, opening it.
He immediately saw the woman outside the door. He looked like he had not woken up and was in a daze. Im already awake.
Um, Master is missing.
MO Ruyue looked at He Xi r s sleepy face and felt a little embarrassed.
She seemed to have disturbed He Xis sleep.
It was very annoying to be disturbed from sleeping.
Your master isnt tied to me, so I dont know where he went.
He Xi said helplessly.
Ming Sihan wouldnt tell him where he went.
Alright, you have a point. Go to sleep first.
MO Ruyue thought about it and felt even more embarrassed.
It was not good to wake her up from her sleep.
Alright, Ill go to bed first. As for your master, you dont have to worry about him at all.
He Xi yawned, turned around and went back to her room, preparing to continue sleeping.
MO Ruyue closed the door and turned to leave.
Ming Sihan came and went without a trace. It was really worrying.
When he returned to the main hall, it waspletely silent, and the air was cold.
The candle beside him was flickering.
MO Ruyue raised her head and saw the empty Demon Venerables throne.
The throne was like a bed, big enough to fit a person.
Sometimes, Ming Sihan wouldzily lean against the throne, looking indescribably seductive.
MO Ruyue looked left and right, and when she didnt see anyone, she walked toward the throne.
Then, he sat on the Demon Venerables throne.
Comfortable!
When would this position be passed to her?
Suddenly, a softugh rang out.
MO Ruyue looked to the side and saw Ming Sihans figure.
She didnt know when he had appeared, but she was shocked.
She subconsciously wanted to stand up.
However, a pair of hands pressed down on her shoulders and said,lf you like to sit, sit boldly..
Master, let me exin.
Although MO Ruyue said that, she had nothing to exin in her heart. He had just sat down secretly and was actually caught red-handed.
You dont need to exin. How about this position?
Its, its pretty good. Master can sit for you. I-Ill go down and stand! MO Ruyue said uneasily.
If the emperor saw his empress and concubines sitting in this position, the concubines and empress would have been pulled down and beheaded. She wanted to get up, but the man beside her held her shoulders tightly.
He didnt let her get up.
Youre not allowed to go down.
Niinz Sihan was a little overbearing. which made MO Ruvue feel at a loss.
MO Ruyue felt as if she was sitting on pins and needles. If she had known earlier, she wouldnt havee up and sat on this throne.
Then, Ming Sihan sat beside him and smiled. Its so nice to sit here with the two of us.
Ruyue, what do you think?
Master, I really didnt mean to sit in your seat.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Ming Sihan was a little unhappy.
Ruyue seemed to have forgotten their rtionship again.
He did not like Ruyue like this.
He pulled the woman into his arms, grabbed the back of the womans head, and kissed her.
Mo Ruyue was confused by his actions and was forced into a passive state.
After a long time, Ming Sihan let go of MO Ruyue. He looked at her lips, which were glowing, and a look of satisfaction shed across his eyes. Ruyue should have remembered their identities now, right?
They were no longer simply master and disciple.
After being treated like this by Ming Sihan, MO Ruyue instantly remembered her identity. She was now this mans official girlfriend.
After all, Ming Sihan had already confessed to her and she didnt reject him.
MO Ruyue coughed awkwardly. I forgot that Im no longer single. I didnt react in time.
After being single for so many years, she suddenly felt like she was in a dream.
It was normal for him to not react.
Unsingle?
l wont be alone in the future, so Im not single anymore.
MO Ruyue was afraid that Ming Sihan didnt understand, so she exined.
She did not dare to look at the man, not knowing where to put her eyes.
Ming Sihan seemed to understand.
Why are you looking for me?
Its nothing. I thought something had happened to you when I saw that you werent in the room.
Mo Ruyue shook her head.
She could not believe that she was no longer single.
Her target was the Demon Lord of the Demon World.
The Demon Lord was her master.
Master, its not a good thing that the sky is always dark. What can we do? MO Ruyue asked, shifting her focus to the most pressing matter at hand.
Her current strength was only at the Golden Core Realm. Her strength was not too low, but it was also not too high.
1 wonder if I can be of any help.
When Jing Xichen and Baili Xie back, Ill go find the evil spirit.
Master, are you going alone? MO Ruyue was a little worried.
Yes, I am.
Why dont we ally with the people from the immortal sect and go together?
Its dangerous to go alone.
Ling Shoumo was indeed annoying, but at least his strength was not bad.
If he was with his master, the chances of defeating the evil spirit would be higher.
No need.
Ming Sihan held the woman in front of him in his arms.
It wasnt that he was arrogant and didnt want to form an alliance with Ling Shoumo. It was just that he didnt want to form an alliance with Ling Shoumo because of Ruyue.
Then Ill go with you, Master.
MO Ruyue felt that she was wrapped tightly in a warm embrace. There was a faint fragrance that made her feel rxed.
Since Ming Sihan wasnt willing to form an alliance with Ling Shoumo, she would go with him.
No need. You can stay in the Demon Realm.
But Im worried.
Youll only be a burden if you go. Why dont you wait for my news in the Demon World? If I cant do it, you can directly sit on the position of Demon
Venerable and be the new Demon Venerable.
Ming Sihans tone was rxed and carried a hint of teasing.
However, MO Ruyue felt a little ufortable hearing this.
She should be happy that she had obtained the position of Demon Venerable, but she could not be happy.
What Ming Sihan said made sense. She was just a burden in the past.
She didnt want to be a burden..
Chapter 861 - 861: Even if I become a malicious ghost, I will still be by your side
Chapter 861 - 861: Even if I be a malicious ghost, I will still be by your side
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Then you muste back safely. Otherwise, Ill find someone else.
MO Ruyue threatened.
She couldnt possibly be a widow for this man for the rest of her life before she got married.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Ming Sihans face darkened. If you dare to find another man, Ill kill that man!
If you donte back, how are you going to kill another man?
MO Ruyue snorted. She still wanted this man to live well.
Ming Sihan kissed MO Ruyues cheek and held MO Ruyues small fist tightly. Dont worry, even if I be a malicious ghost, I will return to your side!
You
Mo Ruyue looked helpless.
Why did he kiss her so often?
If Ming Sihan wasnt good-looking, he would really look like a perverted lecher.
He was good-looking, just like a yboy.
Seeing MO Ruyues face turn red, Ming Sihan did not tease her. Instead, he rested his chin on MO Ruyues shoulder and said in a low voice, Ruyue, let me have a good rest.
Hearing Ming Sihans voice, he seemed very tired.
MO Ruyue did not dare to disturb him.
Not long after, the man really fell asleep.
MO Ruyue carefully turned her head to look at the man beside her. She saw that his eyes were tightly shut and his eyshes were curled up.
Suddenly, she realized that this mans eyshes were very long, like the arc of a fan.
There was nothing to nitpick about her facial features. Her skin was fair and sickly white.
At this moment, she was like a tree stump, and Ming Sihan was like a vine wrapped around her body.
They were tightly entangled.
She thought that this fellow didnt need to sleep much, but she didnt expect him to sleep so soundly.
MO Ruyue looked at Ming Sihan. It was very boring to be alone, and she couldnt move. Otherwise, Ming Sihan would wake up.
Then, she started to feel a little sleepy and slowly leaned into Niing Sihans arms.
The man slowly opened his eyes, and the corners of his lips curled up into a deep arc. He hugged the woman in his arms even tighter.
Just like that, the two of them fell asleep in each others arms on the throne.
When MO Ruyue woke up again, she found a handsome face right in front of her.
M-Masteri
MO Ruyue called out. She remembered that she was still sitting on the throne, but now she was lying on a strange bed.
Next to him was that enchanting and devilish man.
This was Ming Sihans bed.
She sat up, looking a little flustered.
However, Ming Sihan grabbed her hand and pulled her into his arms.
MO Ruyuey back on the bed. She was about to struggle when the man pressed his body against hers. Dont forget that youre no longer single. He reminded her.
Yes, I know.
She knew that she was no longer single, but she still felt a little shy sleeping in the same bed with him.
Ming Sihan yed with her hair. Its very dark outside. You should lie down and rest.
At this moment, MO Chengfengs voice sounded from outside. Demon Venerable, Baili Xi and Jing Xichen have returned. They are waiting for you in the main hall.
When MO Ruyue heard MO Chengfengs voice, she subconsciously held her breath. She had a feeling that someone was checking on her.
He felt a little guilty.
Yes, I know.
Yes, Ming Sihan responded. He turned around and looked at MO Ruyue. Ruyue, have a good rest. Ill go over first.
Yes.
MO Ruyue replied in a low voice.
Cant this mans voice be softer?
Her brother, Mo Chengfeng, was still outside!
Looking at Ming Sihans back, MO Ruyue closed her eyes.
Ming Sihan went outside in a good mood.
Lets go together! he said when he saw MO Chengfeng.
Yes.
Mo Chengfeng responded.
Demon Venerable, why dont I see Ruyue? MO Chengfeng asked.
Ruyue, Ruyue is sleeping in her room. Shes a little tired and hasnt woken up yet.
Ming Sihan said that on purpose, and his face was full of smiles.
MO Chengfeng was speechless. The development between Ruyue and the Demon Lord was a little too fast.
He turned around in disbelief to look at the Demon Lords bedroom. Ruyue was actually inside.
What are you looking at? Lets go to the main hall together. Ming Sihan looked back at MO Chengfeng and smiled.
Yes.
MO Chengfeng replied.
MO Ruyue could hear the conversation outside clearly.
She really wanted to exin, but she felt that it would be a little too obvious.
However, if she did not exin, MO Chengfeng would definitely think that she and the Demon Venerable had already made a deal.
Actually, that was not the case.
MO Ruyue covered her head with the nket.
[Salted Fish System: Congrattions to the host forpleting the mission of sleeping with the Demon Lord. You have received a revival card.]
The Salted Fish Systems voice sounded in his ears. He opened his eyes and realized that he hadpleted the mission.
The mission waspleted just like that!
The reward was a Resurrection Card. Although he did not know what it was used for, he felt that it was very powerful.
MO Ruyue put the Resurrection Card into her backpack.
She quickly got up and dressed up.
She couldnt stay in Ming Sihans room anymore.
In the main hall, besides Baili Xijian and Jing Xichen, there were also Di
Chenxiao, Ye Yunfeng, Ye Junlin, Qi Shaoyu, and Xia Zhixing
Of course, He Xi was also here.
Ming Sihan looked at everyone and said, I wont be bringing you to the nest of the demons this time. You must protect everyone in the demon world. If anything happens, the new master of the demon world will be Ruyue.
Demon Venerable, bring me along. I came to seek refuge with you because I hope that we can work together.
Di Chenxiao didnt want to stay in the Demon Realm and be protected.
Ming Sihan agreed to his request.
Although this guys strength was not particrly powerful, he was still the Wolf King. He should have some skills.
Moreover, it was also a demon beast like him.
MO Ruyue stood in the courtyard and looked up at the dark sky.
He didnt know when the demons would be defeated.
There was a hint of coolness in the wind. Perhaps it was because it was dark, but there was no longer any lively noise.
Usually, there would be birds singing during the day. Now, there was only silence in the forest.
Everything was silent.
After losing the day, she realized how beautiful it was.
The world was only colorful during the day.
After a long time, Ming Sihan returned.
Master.
Seeing Ming Sihan return, MO Ruyue called out to him.
Ming Sihan walked to MO Ruyues side in a few steps and held her slightly cold hands. What are we doing in the courtyard? he asked. Go back to your room and rest.
A warm atmosphere spread around them.
My bones are sore from lying down. I dont want to continue lying down.
MO Ruyue said helplessly.
If he continued lying down, his bones would turn soft.
Alright, but its colder here.
As Ming Sihan spoke, he took off his coat and put it on MO Ruyue.
The coat carried Ming Sihans body temperature, and MO Ruyue felt as if her body was enveloped by a heater.
It was iparably warm.
Master, are you really not bringing me along?
Mo Ruyue asked. Although the position of the Demon Venerable was very fragrant, she still wanted to share weal and woe with her Master.
After all, his master was so kind. It was reasonable for him to share joys and sorrows with his master..
Chapter 862 - 862: Is This Girl That Unafraid of Death?
Chapter 862 - 862: Is This Girl That Unafraid of Death?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
You, just stay in the Demon Realm. If we go together, 1 will have to take care of you. If that demon uses you to threaten me, wont I surrender to him?
Master, you can choose to sacrifice me if necessary. Anyway, she had just obtained a Resurrection Card.
At most, he would choose to revive.
Its not a big deal.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, Ming Sihans face darkened.
What nonsense are you spouting? Was this girl not afraid of death?
He actually said such words.
Im not talking nonsense. For the sake of everyones future, whats wrong with sacrificing one person?
MO Ruyue said matter-of-factly.
You cant say such things in the future.
He would choose to sacrifice anyone but Ruyue.
Just because Ruyue had such thoughts, he would never let her go with him.
Ruyue was his weakness, and he did not want others to grasp his weakness.
MO Ruyue opened her mouth, wanting to speak, but the man in front of her covered her mouth.
He swallowed the words she wanted to say.
The wind became ambiguous, and her long silver hair swept across MO Ruyues face.
After a long time, the man in front of her finally let go of MO Ruyue.
Ming Sihan smiled in satisfaction as he looked at her shiny lips.
Do you still dare to speak nonsense in the future?
Master, youre bullying me!
Who told you to talk nonsense? Would I bully you if you didnt talk nonsense?
Ming Sihan snorted.
Looking at the man in front of her, MO Ruyues eyes were gentle. She raised her hand and gently caressed the mans cold and handsome face. Then Master, you have to promise me that you wille back safely.
l will definitely return safely.
Ming Sihan responded and hugged the woman in front of him tightly.
The coldness in the wind seemed to be even stronger. MO Ruyue felt Ming Sihans body temperature and felt that the mans temperature was very tempting.
She closed her eyes and heard the mans heartbeat.
Ming Sihan and Di Chenxiao left. MO Ruyue, her senior brothers, and He Xi watched the two figures leave.
After that man left, MO Ruyue felt as if her heart had been taken away. She became depressed all day.
So, this was longing.
Of course, she didnt stay idle either. Instead, she continued to practice the Neb Sword Technique.
Sister has been very busy recently.
Li Zeyan held a medical book in his hand and said thoughtfully.
He had wanted to see his sister, but she was either practicing her sword or in seclusion.
He could not talk to his sister at all.
He Xi yawned, as if he hadnt heard Li Zeyans words.
l wonder how that stupid wolf is doing!
Li Zeyan sighed.
He looked up at the sky. The sky was so dark, as if light would nevere to the world again.
What bullsh * t demon? If no one could solve it, then he would go and solve it.
After an unknown number of days, MO Ruyue felt that her Neb Sword Technique was getting better and better. However, there was no news about Ming Sihan at all.
He didnt know if they were doing well.
She couldnt stay any longer and wanted to go to the evil devilsir to take a look.
He felt that five or six days had passed. During this time, everything in the Demon World was normal.
On this day, MO Ruyue found MO Chengfeng.
He saw MO Chengfeng, Baili Xijian, and Jing Xichen together.
Ye Yunfeng, Ye Junlin, Qi Shaoyu, and Xia Zhixing were also there. When they saw MO Ruyue walking over, they instantly shut their mouths.
Ruyue, why are you here? Is something the matter?
MO Chengfeng asked as he stood up from his seat.
What are you discussing here? MO Ruyue nced at everyone.
The other leaders of the Demon World seem to want to snatch the position of Demon Venerable.
Mo Chengfeng sighed softly. He had to admit that those leaders were really bold.
Not long after the Demon Venerable left, they had already begun to set their sights on the Demon Venerables position.
Did he really think that the Demon Lord would never return?
They were discussing how to deal with this matter.
He did not expect Ruyue toe.
ording to the Demon Venerables intentions, if the Demon Venerable did not return, the Demon Venerables position would belong to Ru Yue.
Those leaders didnt have a share at all.
They actually
MO Ruyue was a little angry. Ming Sihan hadnt returned yet, so they had their eyes on the position of the demon lord.
Even if Ming Sihan didnte back, the position of the demon lord wouldnt be theirs.
This group of people was a little too detestable.
ording to the Demon Lords previous words, if the Demon Lord really doesnt return, the position of Demon Lord in the Demon World will be
Ruyues. Those leaders should stop daydreaming.
Jing Xichen snorted. He would obey the Demon Lords orders.
If the Demon Venerable did not return, then the Demon Venerables position could only be Ruyues.
MO Ruyue was no longer as materialistic as she used to be. Her face darkened. She said firmly, Master wille back. The Demon Lord wille back.
Ming Sihan had promised her that he woulde back safely.
Hearing MO Ruyues words, everyone fell silent.
It had been at least eight days since the Demon Lord left.
At present, there was no news about the Demon Venerable.
The Demon Venerable was probably doomed.
They wanted to say this, but they dared not say it when they saw MO Ruyues expression. They were afraid that Ruyue would be upset.
Ruyue, dont worry, MO Chengfeng replied. The Demon Lord will definitely return.
He knew that Ruyue was afraid that Ming Sihan would note back.
Since when did Ruyue care so much about Ming Sihan?
At this moment, a disciple ran in from outside. He said in a hurry, Reporting to Senior Brother Mo. The leader of the southern Devil World, Shangguan She, is leading his elite troops here.
Hes here!
MO Chengfengs face sank. He did not expect it toe so quickly.
Unexpectedly, the leader of the south, Shangguan She, who had always been unknown, was the fastest.
Was this guy so eager to snatch the position of Demon Venerable?
MO Ruyues face darkened. She had never seen Shangguan She before, nor had she even heard of him.
It was not her fault. The Demon Realm upied a very wide area, and there were countless tribal leaders.
Back then, her goal was only the position of the Demon Lord, so she naturally did not care about those so-called leaders. Looks like we have to fight.
Xia Zhixing said. There was no fear on his face.
Thus, the group of them walked out.
MO Ruyue naturally followed him with a solemn expression.
In the dark night, a huge team was holding torches and wearing ck iron masks.
The man in the lead was riding a four-eyed mount. The mount had two horns and looked a little like a ck goat.
But it was not a ck goat.
That man was Shangguan She, the leader of the south. He had a devilish face, fiery red hair, red eyebrows, and red eyes.
It didnt look human.
There was a familiar figure beside Shangguan She.
Mo Chengfeng looked at the figure and frowned. Shen Yunyan, why are you there?
No wonder he hadnt seen Shen Yunvan during this period of time. It turned out that Shen Yunyan was with Shangguan She!
Shen Yunyan wasnt afraid of being recognized by her seniors.
Why cant 1 be here? She nodded slightly. Eldest Senior Brother, you only have MO Ruyue in your eyes!
She paused for a moment and thought of something. No, 1 should say that all of you only have MO Ruyue in your eyes. Im nothing in your hearts.
As long as Shangguan She became the Demon Lord, she would be the new Saintess!
All the seniors felt that Shen Yunyans actions were unreasonable..
Chapter 863 - 863: Are You Afraid That I Will Go Back On My Word?
Chapter 863 - 863: Are You Afraid That I Will Go Back On My Word?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Shen Yunyan, what do you want?
MO Chengfeng questioned. His eyes were filled with disgust for Shen Yunyan.
Now that the position of Demon Venerable is vacant, wont there be a powerful person who will be the new Demon Venerable?
And this powerful person just happens to be Chief Shangguan!
Shen Yunyan smiled.
It seemed that he would soon achieve his goal.
Shen Yunyan, the Demon Lord hasnt returned yet, and youre already doing this. The Demon Lord will definitely kill you when he returns!
Moreover, even if the Demon Lord doesnt return, the Demon Lords position will still be Ruyues. This is the Demon Lords intention! Dont even think about sitting on the Demon Venerables seat.
Jing Xichen said loudly.
When Shen Yunyan heard Jing Xichens words, she burst intoughter.
Even nosN, youre still protecting MO Ruyue! I dont know what makes her worthy of all of you protecting her! Shen Yunyans eyes were red with jealousy.
He clenched his fists tightly.
Looking at Shen Yunyans deranged appearance, MO Ruyue sighed helplessly.
Shangguan She interrupted the conversation between Shen Yunyan and MO Chengfeng.
Enough, I didnte here to listen to you guys argue about this.
Yes, leader.
Shen Yunyan shut her mouth.
He retreated to the side.
Shangguan She nodded slightly and said to MO Chengfeng, MO Chengfeng, the Demon Lord is not here now. Im afraid he wonte back. The position of the Demon Lord is vacant. That position needs a powerful person to sit on and lead the Demon World to glory. In the Demon Realm, there shouldnt be anyone stronger than me, right?
Shangguan She, if the Demon Lordes back, do you think he will let you go?
MO Chengfeng berated.
When the Demon Lordes back, Ill just return the Demon Lords position to him. Now that the position of Demon Venerable is vacant, someone needs to sit in that position, and Im the best candidate.
Shangguan She knew his own strength. He wasnt Ming Sihans match, but no one could defeat him except Ming Sihan.
Moreover, Ming Sihan might not be able toe back.
Now was the perfect time for him to attack the Demon Venerables position.
The Demon Lord said that if he doesnte back, the position of Demon Lord will be MO Ruyues. Shangguan She, I advise you not to have any illusions about the position of Demon Lord!
MO Chengfeng berated.
MO Ruyue, who is it? I only obey the strong. The weak can forget about riding on my head.
Shangguan She looked disdainful because in the demon world, only Ming Sihan was stronger than him.
Back then, if not for that man, the position of Demon Venerable would have been his long ago.
He was convinced by Ming Sihan.
MO Chengfeng also knew this mans temperament.
Although he had never seen how the Demon Venerable defeated Shangguan
She, it was many years ago, and he was not in the Demon Realm at that time.
If Ming Sihan hadnt appeared, Shangguan She would have been the demon lord of the demon world.
Mo Ruyue is the sessor to the position appointed by the Demon Venerable. Are you trying to defy the Demon Venerables will?
MO Chengfeng used Ming Sihan to threaten Shangguan She.
Shangguan She snorted coldly, his eyes filled with contempt. I will obey Ming
Sihan. If the demon lord is not Ming Sihan, I will do the opposite!
In his eyes, there was only Ming Sihan. Only Ming Sihan could make him submit. No one else was worthy!
Chief Shangguan, dont waste your breath on them. Today, I will definitely help Chief Shangguan!
Shen Yunyan, who was beside him, immediately ttered him.
Shangguan She only nced at Shen Yunyan and did not take her words seriously.
MO Ruyue saw that MO Chengfeng seemed to be very afraid of Shangguan She.
She couldnt help but ask, Brother, whats the background of this man?
MO Chengfeng pursed his lips and said slowly, I heard that this man is cruel and has extraordinary strength. Moreover, he has a troop called ughter under him. They can fight against a hundred people alone, and all of them are at the Golden Core Realm. The Honor Demon spent a lot of effort to defeat this guy. If it werent for the Honor Demon, the Honor Demon would be Shangguan She now.
So strong?
MO Ruyue was shocked. She did not expect Shangguan She to leave like this.
If Ming Sihan wasnt here, this man would indeed be more suitable to be the demon lord than her.
However, she believed that Ming Sihan woulde back, so she could not let Shangguan She ascend to the position of the demon lord.
Yes, if we really fight, we might not be their match.
MO Chengfeng looked worried.
Youre MO Ruyue, arent you? Shangguan Shes eyes fell on MO Ruyue. His pupils shrank.
Chief Shangguan, thats right. Shes MO Ruyue, Shen Yunyan quickly said.
Im not asking you, shut up!
Shangguan She spoke with a cold expression. He was very unhappy with Shen
Yunyan.
Shen Yunyan quickly shut her mouth.
If this man became a demon, his methods would be even more terrifying than Ming Sihans!
MO Ruyue lowered her head and looked at Shangguan She, who was standing below the city gate tower.
If they really fought, would she be a match for that man?
To be honest, she wasnt too sure.
After being scolded by Shangguan She, Shen Yunyan did not dare to speak anymore.
This man was really unpredictable and unpredictable.
Im MO Ruyue. Whats wrong?
MO Ruyue responded to Shangguan Shes words. For the sake of the Demon Lord and Ming Sihan, she could never bow down to this man.
At most, they would have a fierce battle.
Obediently hand over the position of Demon Venerable. I am more suitable for that position than you.
Shangguan She looked at the woman on the city gate tower with a trace of contempt in his eyes.
He didnt care about a woman.
How powerful could a woman be?
Im sorry. If you want me to give up my position as the Demon Venerable, youll have to defeat me!
In that case, for the sake of unnecessary casualties, lets fight. If you win, the position of Demon Venerable will be yours, and I will submit to you. If I win, you will obediently give up the position of Demon Venerable. After all, that position is a symbol of the strong. The weak are not worthy of the position of Demon Venerable!
Shangguan She had a warlike nature in his blood. He was fierce, arrogant, cruel, and bloodthirsty.
In his eyes, there were only experts and the position of Demon Venerable.
He definitely could not watch helplessly as the position of Demon Venerable was taken by a little girl.
As MO Ruyue listened to Shangguan She, she felt that this man was not as despicable as she had imagined. After all, he spoke with his own strength.
In order to be the Demon Lord, she had no choice but to fight Shangguan She.
Moreover, he couldnt use underhanded methods.
Using underhanded methods would be too disrespectful.
Unless Shangguan She also used underhanded methods, then it would still make sense.
However, if the other party used his true ability to exchange blows with him while he used underhanded methods, he would definitely be looked down upon!
He hoped that Ming Sihans Neb Sword Technique would be useful.
Why arent you saying anything? Are you afraid? If youre afraid, give up the position of Demon Venerable.
Shangguan She waited for a while, but the woman didnt respond.
His voice also became louder.
How could a woman sit on the position of Demon Venerable?
She didnt know what Ming Sihan was thinking. He actually wanted this woman to be the next demon lord!
It had to be said that Ming Sihans taste in people was really bad.
Whos afraid? Lets fight. But, do you keep your word?
MO Ruyue asked, her tone filled with suspicion.
There are so many people here watching and listening. Are you afraid that Ill go back on my word? Shangguan She sneered..
Chapter 864 - 864: Perhaps This Is An Opportunity
Chapter 864 - 864: Perhaps This Is An Opportunity
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Alright then. I hope you keep your word.
MO Ruyue sighed, her palms sweating.
To be honest, she had yet to use the Neb Sword Technique properly.
He remembered Ming Sihan saying that the Neb Sword Technique was very powerful.
However, because she had never met an opponent before, she had never been able to truly unleash the Neb Sword Technique once.
Perhaps, this was his chance.
MO Ruyue thought to herself.
Seeing this, Shen Yunyan was extremely anxious. She took the risk of being scolded by Shangguan She and said, Chief Shangguan, dont listen to her.
This woman is cunning and cunning. You must not believe her!
Back then, I was yed, so I missed the position of the Demon World Saintess.
Shen Yunyans heart was filled with hatred when she thought about what happened back then.
This woman was doing very well, attracting everyones attention.
It was MO Ruyue who took away everything that belonged to her.
How could she not hate MO Ruyue?
You dont need to care about my business. If you dont shut up, Ill kill you.
Shangguan She nced at Shen Yunyan.
His eyes were filled with killing intent.
This woman was really annoying.
Because he hated it when others pointed fingers at his decisions.
No matter what the final oue was, he would bear the responsibility alone.
There was no need for this woman to remind him.
Shen Yunyan could clearly feel the murderous intent in the mans eyes.
Instantly, she did not dare to speak and shut her mouth.
The clenched fists by her side showed her dissatisfaction.
But no one cared about her dissatisfaction.
No one would notice her.
MO Chengfeng and the other Senior Brothers stared at MO Ruyue.
Their eyes were filled with worry.
Ruyue, can you do it?
Mo Chengfeng asked.
l cant, but I have to, MO Ruyue shrugged helplessly. How confident are we? What are our chances of winning?
l dont have the confidence, nor do I have the chance to win.
The other party was so ferocious that it would definitely be difficult to deal with him.
If MO Ruyue couldnt keep her position as the Demon Lord today, then she wouldnt be able to face Ming Sihan anymore.
Ruyue
MO Chengfeng pursed his lips, hesitating whether he should say it or not.
Looking at Shangguan She, he saw that Shangguan She had already taken out the seven-star spiked club, which was Shangguan Shes weapon!
Why dont we forget about it? he hurriedly said. At most, we can let him sit on the Demon Venerables seat first. When the Demon Venerable returns, Shangguan She will still have to obediently give up his position.
Who was Shangguan She? He was an existence second only to the Demon
Lord.
He was worried that MO Ruyue was no match for Shangguan She.
No, Master isnt here. Ill protect the Demon Venerables position.
Mo Ruyues eyes turned cold and her attitude was firm.
Let Ruyue go. I think Ruyue can do it. Baili Xi pulled MO Chengfeng back.
Junior Brother Baili, are you crazy? The other party is not a small fry, but Shangguan She!
MO Chengfeng looked at Baili Xijian in confusion.
Baili Xi saw this and said, I know youre worried about MO Ruyue. But if Ruyue is the one to take the Demon Lords position, Shangguan She might not be the only one who is unhappy today. Tomorrow, the day after tomorrow, there will be others who are unhappy. By then, the entire Demon Realm will be in chaos.
But, what if Ruyue loses?
If I lose, then I shouldnt be sitting on the Demon Venerables seat, said MO Ruyue.
Then, MO Ruyue asked Shangguan She who was downstairs, Where shall we go then?
He had to find a decent ce topete, right? It wasnt suitable here. The venue was rtively narrow, and if he didnt control it well, it was easy to hurt the innocent.
Shangguan She raised his hand, and the men behind him immediately scattered to the side.
The venue was instantly emptied.
What do you think of this ce?
Im afraid of hurting the innocent. MO Ruyue hesitated.
With your strength, how can you hurt the innocent?
Shangguan She shook his head. He felt that this woman thought too highly of him.
Hurting the innocent, howughable!
Hearing Shangguan Shes mocking tone, MO Ruyue flew down the city tower with Heaven Executioner and Ghost Thought.
He had to show this man what it meant to be the heir of the Dual Sword Style Demon Venerable.
Shangguan She looked at MO Ruyue holding the sword with both hands and frowned. You can use two swords? he asked.
A little.
MO Ruyue said humbly.
Come on, seeing that youre a woman, Ill let you have three moves first.
No need, just go ahead!
MO Ruyue refused because she did not want to be treated differently.
If this man was really powerful, she wouldnt be able to win even if he gave her three moves.
There was no need for so many fancy things. He just had to do it directly.
Alright, straightforward. Then I wont stand on ceremony. Shangguan She had a different opinion of this woman.
There was actually no need for special treatment.
Shangguan Shes Seven-star Mace instantly burst into mes. He waved the Seven-star Mace and swung it at MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue felt a strong impact on her face.
She flew up and narrowly dodged it.
The people around him cheered.
MO Ruyue gritted her teeth and gripped the two swords in her hands tightly.
This man was fast, urate, and ruthless. He did not give anyone a chance to breathe at all.
Following that, another stick came knocking over.
It was obvious that this man did not go easy on her. If she was hit, her face would probably be smashed.
MO Ruyue bent her waist, but Shangguan She skillfully controlled the Seven Star Wolf Fang Club and swung it down.
The hearts of the men on the city gate tower tightened.
Ruyue!
When Jing Xichen saw this scene, he couldnt help but shout.
MO Ruyue exerted strength in her legs and turned over, dodging Shangguan Shes attack.
She suspected that this guy didnt even use his cultivation.
It was indeed powerful!
Looks like youre about to die!
Shangguan She sneered and continued, You are already very powerful. Other than Ming Sihan, no one can dodge three of my moves.
MO Ruyue took a deep breath. She instantly felt that the two of them were not on the same level.
She had not used the Neb Sword Technique yet.
He was too focused on dodging and did not have the chance to use the Neb Sword Technique.
Youre quite powerful too.
MO Ruyue said. Taking advantage of this gap, she leaped up andunched an attack.
This turned from passive to active.
The two swords shed towards Shangguan She.
Shangguan She swung his seven-star spiked club horizontally in front of him, blocking the two swords.
In an instant, there was the sound of weapons colliding.
When the Seven-star Wolf Fang Club and the ghost thought collided, Netherworld Fire actually appeared.
It was a light blue me.
Little girl, you used quite a bit of strength!
Shangguan She stepped hard and almost fell back.
MO Ruyue gritted her teeth, then turned around nimbly and began to use the Neb Sword Technique.
Mo Ruyue could feel her breathing bing more and more stable as she used her cultivation base.
The Neb Sword Technique was about bing stronger when faced with stronger opponents.
When Shangguan She rammed into MO Ruyue, she was sent flying, and her entire body was embedded in the crevice of the stone.
Ruyue!
MO Chengfeng shouted.
The disparity in strength was simply too great.
MO Ruyue took a moment to recover. She thought she was dead for sure.
However, he did not feel any intense pain all over his body.
It was just that it was stuck in the stone.
Wait a minute! MO Ruyue shouted when she saw Shangguan She charging at her again.
As expected, the person opposite him stopped..
Chapter 865 - 865: Nebula Sword Technique?
Chapter 865 - 865: Neb Sword Technique?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Whats wrong? Are you going to admit defeat?
No, how could I admit defeat?
Then what are you waiting for? Im stuck in a crack in the rock.
Everyone burst intoughter.
MO Ruyue blushed. How could these peopleugh at her?
MO Chengfeng heaved a sigh of relief when he heard MO Ruyues rxed tone.
Ruyue should be fine.
l cant. 1 cant continue watching. My heart cant take it anymore.
Ye Junlin turned around, not daring to look at it anymore.
Brother, he said to Ye Yunfeng beside him, take a look and tell me the results.
If you want to know the result, see for yourself. Ye Yunfeng snorted and ignored Ye Junlins words.
Stingy!
Ye Junlin muttered.
It wasnt that he didnt support Ruyue, but he couldnt stand seeing Ruyue being beaten up.
He wanted to go up and help.
However, he knew that it was useless for him to go up and help.
Right now, he was far weaker than Ruyue.
MO Ruyue moved her arms and struggled out of the crack in the rock.
Now, everyone had seen how embarrassing she was.
Fortunately, Ming Sihan wasnt here. Otherwise, he would have died of anger.
Do you still want to fight?
Fight, of course we have to fight. I cant give the position of Demon Lord to you with both hands.
MO Ruyue snorted and continued to fight.
Then continue.
Shangguan Shes face was full of excitement. It had been a long time since he met someone who could fight with him so well.
However, he had underestimated the woman in front of him and thought that he could deal with her in a few moves.
He didnt expect her tost so long.
Ming Sihan didnt seem to have such bad taste in people.
MO Ruyue used the Neb Sword Technique. Her speed became faster and faster, and her movements became very gentle.
Strength is apanied by softness, and hardness and softness arebined.
If it is true, it is false, and if it is false, it is true.
What move is this?
Shangguan She frowned and found that this womans methods seemed to be somewhat unusual.
His movement technique was strange and his sword wind was sharp.
It waspletely different from the messy moves from before.
That woman was at the early stage of the Golden Elixir realm.
And he was at the peak of the Golden Elixir realm!
However, he could feel the strength of a Nascent Soul Realm cultivator from that woman!
What was going on?
MO Ruyues figure turned into a beam of light. Countless illusory white sword shadows flew towards Shangguan She.
Shangguan She could only dodge.
However, his subordinates were not so lucky.
Many people were injured.
Screams filled his ears.
The pain that prated deep into his bones was unbearable even for a man with an iron backbone.
It was not MO Ruyues fault, but Shangguan Shes decision topete here.
Shen Yunyan was not spared either. Her arms and legs were pierced by two beams of white light.
She instantly fell off the horse and fell to the ground, letting out an ear-piercing scream.
It seemed to drown out the voices of everyone present.
It was like a pig being ughtered.
The horse was startled and immediately stepped on her.
Shen Yunyan had just been stabbed by the sword shadow, and now she was trampled by the horse. She could not bear the pain and fainted.
Hey on the ground without any reaction.
Should we bring Shen Yunyan back? Qi Shaoyu frowned.
Whats wrong? Do you feel pity for her?
Xia Zhixing asked.
Not really.
Then you still want to bring him back?
She has done so many bad things. Shouldnt we bring her back and punish her properly? Qi Shaoyu said.
Thats true. Then take her back and lock her in the water prison first. Dont let here out and cause trouble again.
Senior Brother MO, what do you think? Xia Zhixing asked MO Chengfeng.
Lets do as you say.
MO Chengfengpletely agreed with Xia Zhixing.
If Shen Yunyan was obedient, no one would target her.
However, this woman did not know what it meant to be obedient.
The unconscious Shen Yunyan was taken away and locked in the water prison.
Otherwise, Shen Yunyan woulde out and continue to act like a tyrant.
MO Ruyue was still fighting with Shangguan She. Shangguan She looked at the woman in front of him as if she had changed into another person.
It was very powerful and fast.
His arm was cut open by the womans sword.
Youre quite capable!
Shangguan She lowered his eyebrows and nced at the wound on his skin. Blood gushed out from it.
The wound was not too big, so there was no need to deal with it.
Hearing Shangguan Shes praise, MO Ruyue replied, Youre not bad yourself.
The Neb Sword Technique that Ming Sihan had taught her was indeed powerful. Its explosive power was extraordinary.
He wasnt afraid of Shangguan Shes Seven-star Wolf Fang Mace at all.
Previously, she was at a disadvantage, but now she was starting to gain the upper hand.
Come, lets continue! Shangguan She nodded slightly and shouted.
Alright, continue!
MO Ruyue responded. She had no choice but to continue.
Thus, the two of them began another round ofpetition.
MO Chengfeng and the others saw that MO Ruyue had the upper hand, and they finally stopped worrying.
In the dark night, two figures fought from the ground to the sky, and then from the sky to the ground.
Many nts in the surroundings were affected.
When will they finish fighting?
Jing Xichen frowned slightly. He was tired from watching.
It should be soon, right?
MO Chengfeng said thoughtfully.
Ru Yue was like a ray of light that pierced through the sky and rushed towards Shangguan She.
The Seven-star Wolf Fang Club in Shangguan Shes hand kept spinning into a Firestorm Wheel.
A ck tornado started to form around them.
The tornado was getting stronger and stronger, as if it was going to suck MO Ruyue in.
With a bang, MO Ruyue broke through the tornado. Her two swords merged into one and stabbed straight at Shangguan She.
The scene was like a meteor hitting the earth.
Shangguan She resisted it with all his might, but this womans strength was surprisingly great.
Its time to end it! MO Ruyue looked at Shangguan She and said in a low voice.
With a furious roar, her power erupted again.
Shangguan She was sent flying and hit the tree with his back. The whole tree was broken.
The next second, MO Ruyue flew to Shangguan She. She pointed the sword at
Shangguan She and said, Im sorry. You lost.
Shangguan She spat out a mouthful of blood. He clutched his chest and stared at the woman in front of him.
Heughed at himself. I didnt expect to lose to a woman.
Why, until now, you still look down on women?
MO Ruyue frowned and stared coldly at the man in front of her.
From the mans words, it seemed like he looked down on women.
Shangguan She waved his hand and said, I dont look down on women. I just think women are so weak. I didnt expect them to have such great power.
How did you do it?
As a woman, her cultivation was lower than his, but now he had lost to this woman.
If not for so many people watching, others might not believe him.
Maybe its because of the Neb Sword Technique that Master taught me. MO Ruyue said thoughtfully.
Perhaps it was because of this set of sword techniques that allowed her to explode at the critical moment.
Otherwise, she would not be able to defeat Shangguan She.
Neb Sword Technique?
Shangguan She thought for a moment and thenughed out loud..
Chapter 866 - 866: All of This Was Ling Shoumo’s Doing
Chapter 866 - 866: All of This Was Ling Shoumos Doing
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue was puzzled. What are youughing at?
The Laughing Demon Lord had expected this day toe. It seems that you are indeed the one he thinks highly of.
Shangguan She stood up from the ground and picked up the seven-star spiked club beside him.
Then, he continued, You are the second person to defeat me. Since you have already defeated me, I will keep my promise. I will give you the position of the Demon Lord. l, Shangguan She, admit defeat!
He could afford to lose.
The position of the Demon Venerable was handed over to an expert. Only then would the Demon Venerable have hope.
He believed that he was also an expert. As long as he could defeat him, he would also be an expert.
The Demon Realm ruled by the strong would definitely be better.
Thank you.
MO Ruyue said modestly.
Shangguan She was a gentleman who kept his word.
Shangguan She whistled and the ck goat ran over.
He jumped up andnded on the back of the ck goat. Ill leave this to you, he said slowly. Ill take them back.
Take care.
MO Ruyue watched Shangguan She turn around swiftly and her furrowed brows finally rxed.
Looking at Shangguan Shes back, she heaved a sigh of relief.
MO Ruyue only returned to her Senior Brothers side after everyone had left.
Ruyue, youre really amazing.
Ye Junlin praised him generously.
Ruyue is indeed very strong! Ye Yunfeng, who was beside her, also said.
Ruyue, do you know that every move of yours is too pleasing to the eyes? Jing Xichen was full of praise.
Listening to the praises of her Senior Brothers, MO Ruyue found herself gradually lost in these praises.
At this moment, He Xi, who had only realized itter, came over.
l heard that someone is here to snatch the position of Demon Venerable? he asked nervously. Where is that person?
He swept his gaze across the crowd.
Theres indeed someone here to snatch the position of Demon Venerable, MO Ruyue nodded.
Where is that person? He Xi asked again.
Im leaving.
Gone? Where did he go?
He Xi asked again.
Of course, we have to leave this ce.
Didnt you want to snatch the position of Demon Venerable?
Crane Creek was a little confused
MO Chengfeng, who was standing at the side, kindly informed him, The person who came to snatch the Demon Venerables position has already been chased away by Ruyue.
Hearing this, He Xi heaved a sigh of relief. Alright, she said. I thought the position of Demon Lord was going to be taken away.
With me around, no one can take away the Demon Venerables position. MO Ruyue said firmly.
MO Ruyue felt a little smug because she agreed with Shangguan She.
The person she was most worried about was Ming Sihan.
It had been a long time, but she still hadnt heard any news about Ming Sihan and Di Chenxiao.
Mo Ruyue was already prepared to make a trip to the demonsir to see what was going on.
Almost everyone didnt agree with her going to the evil devilsir.
But MO Ruyue couldnt care less.
She was a little worried about Ming Sihan.
So, in order to find Ming Sihan, MO Ruyue secretly left the demon world alone.
No one noticed.
When they arrived outside, they realized that it was actually so chaotic outside.
Because the sky was dark, everyones lives were already in chaos.
In order to survive, many people began to rob and kill, seizing resources and food.
The imperial court could not control those people.
Because it was dark, as long as he wore a night suit, he would not be discovered even if hemitted a crime.
Riots broke out in all the countries.
Apart from the Imperial Pce and the capital city, everything else was in chaos.
After all, the emperor was far away, and many ces were beyond the reach of the imperial court.
MO Ruyue did not have the energy to care about the affairs of the human world.
There were so many riots in so many ces. How could she manage them all by herself?
His abilities were limited.
It was not a good idea to manage them one by one.
The best way was to defeat the evil spirit. As long as the evil spirit was defeated, everything would return to the right track.
MO Ruyue arrived at the evil devilsir. The surroundings werepletely illuminated by red light. She could see the stone cave fortress from afar. The evil devil should be inside.
He slowlynded on the ground.
Looking at the white bones on the ground, MO Ruyue felt a chill run down her spine.
The ck evil aura flew past her, making her hair stand on end.
MO Ruyue held her breath and tried her best to avoid the ck evil Qi.
Suddenly, a figure appeared in her line of sight.
She stopped in her tracks and took a closer look. She asked in confusion, Ling Shoumo?
He didnt expect to find Ling Shoumo here.
Ling Shoumo flew down from the rock andnded in front of MO Ruyue.
His eyes were fervent. Why are you here?
Do I have to report to you?
MO Ruyue muttered.
What about you? What are you doing here?
Ling Shoumo was silent. After a while, he answered, Youd better note here.
This ce is very dangerous! Have you seen my master? MO Ruyue asked.
He stared at Ling Shoumo.
Ling Shoumos face darkened. I am your master!
No, I only have one master, and my master only has one disciple. My masters name is Ming Sihan.
Youre not my master. Please understand your current situation. MO Ruyue rolled her eyes.
He had ignored her back then, but now she was unworthy of him.
He still wanted to be her master? Dream on. She would never be this mans disciple again. Ruyue, I know that youre just being angry at me.
AhF * ck, dont be so narcissistic, okay?
MO Ruyue couldnt take it anymore and screamed. She was almost speechless by this mans narcissism.
She walked past the man and walked forward.
She didnt want to have too much to do with Ling Shoumo.
Ling Shoumo shed and appeared in front of MO Ruyue, blocking her way.
Ruyue, whats so good about Ming Sihan? Did he drug you?
Hearing Ling Shoumos unrelenting voice.
MO Ruyue drew her Heaven-cleaving Sword and pointed it at the man in front of her. Ill kill you if you talk to me again.
Also, my rtionship with Ming Sihan is more than just a master-disciple rtionship. He likes me, and I like him. If nothing goes wrong, we should be together forever.
Her words reminded Ling Shoumo of the scene he had seen before.
Ling Shoumo clenched his fists and lowered his eyes. There was jealousy and anger in his eyes.
MO Ruyue snorted and brushed past Ling Shoumo.
He didnt pay any more attention to this guy.
Ruyue,e back to my side!
Ling Shoumos voice sounded, and his hand moved slightly.
MO Ruyue instantly felt that she had lost control of her body. Her legs seemed to be sucked in by something and she could not move.
She knew that all of this was Ling Shoumos doing.
Ling Shoumo, what are you doing?
MO Ruyue roared.
Other than being able to speak, see, hear, and breathe, she could do nothing else.
She heard Ling Shoumos footsteps approaching her, as if he was stepping into her heart step by step.
MO Ruyue instantly panicked.
That man appeared in front of her again..
Chapter 867 - 867: Take Your Hand Away, I Dislike It’s Dirty!
Chapter 867 - 867: Take Your Hand Away, I Dislike Its Dirty!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Why dont you listen to me?
Ling Shoumo looked at the woman in front of him lovingly. He reached out and gently stroked her delicate face.
MO Ruyue only felt that Ling Shoumos actions made her feel ufortable.
Unfortunately, she could not move.
He did not know what spell it was.
Take your hand away, I think its dirty!
MO Ruyue berated him. She bit her lip, wishing she could bite Ling Shoumo to death.
That damned stinky man.
Wasnt it good for each other to let each other go?
Do you dislike my dirty hands?
Ling Shoumo retracted his hand and looked down at his hands silently.
He frowned slightly. He did not feel that his hands were dirty. He was just taking back what originally belonged to him.
Then, Ling Shoumos lips curled up as he approached MO Ruyue.
You, what do you want? Ling Shoumo, youre the sect master of Xuanling
Immortal Sect after all. Dont do anything dirty. When everyone finds out that youre so dirty, lets see how youre going to establish your image!
At this moment, MO Ruyue was already panicking. She wondered if this guy was going to do anything reckless.
After all, he had the image of a gentleman. Was he going to break his own image?
Ling Shoumo moved closer to MO Ruyues ear. The hot air sprayed onto MO Ruyues sensitive ears, making her feel ufortable.
You said that your masters hands are dirty. Then your master wont use them. What do you think?
The mans voice was filled with evilness.
MO Ruyue resisted the urge to vomit. Ling Shoumo, are you shameless?
No, I only want you.
As he spoke, Ling Shoumo kissed MO Ruyues cheek.
MO Ruyue closed her eyes and felt goosebumps all over her body.
It turned out that being kissed by someone she didnt like was like being kissed by a pig.
Her entire body was filled with resistance and disgust.
No matter how handsome or outstanding Ling Shoumo was, his image had been ruined by her.
The man moved closer to her lips. MO Ruyue was so anxious that she was afraid that she would vomit.
Ling Shoumo, this is the territory of the evil spirit. Instead of eliminating the evil spirit, youre taking advantage of me. Are you crazy?
MO Ruyue shouted.
When the man approached her lips, MO Ruyue suddenly shut her mouth and pursed her lips into a thin line.
She never expected that the man who hated her back then would actually kiss
It was too disgusting.
Dont be afraid, he said slowly, pinching her chin. No one will disturb us in this array.
MO Ruyue cursed in her heart.
Dont be like this. Can I be your disciple? She hurriedly said while Ling Shoumo was gone.
A real man could yield and stand firm, let alone a little girl.
She had to calm Ling Shoumo down first. She didnt want to be kissed by this man.
It was too disgusting.
Ling Shoumo looked at the woman in front of him. He felt that she was extremely beautiful and her eyes were bright.
He thought for a moment and said, 1 suddenly changed my mind. I dont want you to be my disciple. I want you to be my wife.
Fine, fine, fine. Ill be your wife, Ill be your wife, but you cant control me and force me to do it. You have to make me willing, right?
If you force yourself, I will never ept you! They will only hate you, hate
Ling Shoumo listened to MO Ruyues words. He didnt want that woman to hate him or hate him.
Therefore, he still let go of MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue regained her freedom. She took a few steps back and looked at the man in front of her with vignce.
Ling Shoumo, stop! Donte near me!
MO Ruyue quickly stopped the man when she saw him approaching.
This man was really too scary.
Ruyue, you promised me just now.
Ling Shoumo looked at the woman in front of him with a hint of desire in his eyes.
This woman would never leave him.
MO Ruyue was very afraid of Ling Shoumos current appearance.
To be honest, although she didnt like the cold and aloof Ling Shoumo of the past, she realized that the cold and aloof Ling Shoumo was better than the infatuated Ling Shoumo now.
It was better to be that cold and aloof Ling Shoumo.
Master, dont be like this.
MO Ruyue kept retreating. Her hand was ced behind her back as she quietly took out a brick from her backpack.
He couldnt beat them, so he wanted to see if the brick had any effect.
Ling Shoumo smiled when he heard MO Ruyue call him Master.
Ruyue, youre finally willing to call me Master, he said.
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes in her heart. How could she not shout?
He was still threatened.
It was impossible for her to call him master willingly.
Master, why are you here? Arent you here to deal with the demons?
MO Ruyue asked curiously.
Although she didnt want to call him Master, MO Ruyue had no choice but to call him Master in order to calm him down.
He was just a master, not a master.
Ming Sihan was her only master.
Why do we have to deal with demons? Cant we coexist with the demons?
Ling Shoumos expression turned cold as he spoke slowly.
These words stunned MO Ruyue.
She looked at the man in front of her in disbelief. This guy could actually say such words.
Previously, she had also persuaded Ling Shoumo that the demon world and the immortal sect could live together, but how did Ling Shoumo respond?
This fellow stubbornly believed that the Demon Realm was filled with evil and crooked paths that could not coexist.
The demons that appeared now were clearly more dangerous than the demon world, but this man actually said that they could live together.
MO Ruyue stared at Ling Shoumo closely. Her intuition told her that the Ling Shoumo in front of her was no longer the Ling Shoumo of the past.
But the demons brought sickness to everyone, and even darkened the sky.
Lets go outside and see what chaos those countries are in.
Master, you werent like this in the past. How did this man be like this?
MO Ruyue really couldnt understand.
Coexisting with the demons meant that everyone would have to live in darkness?
If she couldnt do it, no one in the world could.
People change. Havent you changed too? You used to love Master, but now, you have Ming Sihan in your heart! Ruyue, you changed first.
Ling Shoumo pointed at MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue opened her mouth. She had never admired Ling Shoumo.
The original MO Ruyue was in love with Ling Shoumo. So, Master, you wont attack the demons, right?
Yes.
Alright then.
MO Ruyue sighed. It seemed that Ling Shoumo was hopeless.
Previously, they had said that they would join forces to resist the evil demons, but now
This stupid man!
MO Ruyue cursed the man in front of her in her heart.
Was there something wrong with this mans brain?
You and I have different paths and we cant work together. I wont allow evil demons to stay in this world.
MO Ruyue immediately expressed her stance.
Who would have thought that the master of the dignified Xuanling Immortal Sect would actually co-exist with the demons one day?
No one would believe him if he said that.
Everyone believed that the Devil World and the Evil Demons had reached a co-existing rtionship.
But you are so weak. Do you think you can defeat the evil spirit? Even Ming Sihan is no match for him!
Ling Shoumo said excitedly.
MO Ruyue grasped the key point.
You know where my master is, right? Youve already met him, havent you?
She quickly asked.
She stared at the man in front of her.
Only then did Ling Shoumo calm down. He realized that he seemed to have said something he shouldnt have.
However, he had already said it, so there was no need to continue hiding it.
Yes, Ive already met him. His current situation is very bad.
Ling Shoumo said slowly.
Master! Can you take me to see him?
MO Ruyue asked.
Ling Shoumo met her concerned eyes. He approached MO Ruyue and lifted her chin.
When will your eyes show concern for me?
Master!
MO Ruyue pursed her lips and did not push Ling Shoumos hand away.
Because she had a favor to ask of Ling Shoumo.
If her guess was correct, Ling Shoumo must have reached some kind of agreement with the demons.
That was why Ling Shoumo was able to appear here.
He didnt expect that the person who betrayed everyone was actually Ling Shoumo.
Who knew how many people knew about this..
Chapter 868 - 868: Confession
Chapter 868 - 868: Confession
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
As long as you be my woman, 1 will bring you to Ming Sihan.
MO Ruyue fell silent.
Without even thinking, she would never agree.
Im a person with integrity.
MO Ruyue said firmly. Then, she picked up the brick and threw it at the man in front of her when he was unprepared.
Ling Shoumo instinctively tried to block it.
He didnt take the womans attack seriously. However, his body was quickly sent flying.
How did this happen?
Ling Shoumo knelt on one knee. When did MO Ruyue be so powerful?
What was that thing in her hand? It looked like a brick.
Looking at the brick in MO Ruyues hand, Ling Shoumo frowned.
MO Ruyue weighed the brick in her hand and revealed a smug expression.
There was nothing powerful about this brick. The only thing powerful about it was that it reflected the opponents strength.
Therefore, the more strength Ling Shoumo used to hit her, the more strength he used to hit himself.
Ling Shoumo slowly stood up and flew to MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyues heart skipped a beat. She hurriedly put the brick behind her.
What was that thing just now?
Ling Shoumo asked. It seemed to be even more powerful than the sword she was carrying.
MO Ruyue snorted. Its just an ordinary brick.
Let me see!
MO Ruyue refused without hesitation.
Then, she wanted to fly away, but the man grabbed her ankle.
What are you doing?
Dont overestimate yourself to deal with the evil spirit. Youre not his match.
Ling Shoumo advised.
He did not look too good.
This woman did not seem to care about him at all. Thats none of your business. Let go of me quickly.
You are my disciple, how can I ignore you?
Ling Shoumo pulled MO Ruyue into his arms, only to find that the brick was no longer on her.
MO Ruyue had put the brick in her backpack when Ling Shoumo came over.
Other than herself, no one else could see the backpack.
Did you put it in your storage ring?
Ling Shoumo couldnt find the brick. He lowered his head and saw the storage ring on MO Ruyues finger.
The brick must be in the storage ring.
So what?
MO Ruyue followed Ling Shoumos words and continued. This man couldnt be trying to get her storage ring, right?
At this moment, two figures walked over.
Seeing this, Ling Shoumo pulled MO Ruyue to the side behind a rock.
Seeing that MO Ruyue was about to shout, he reached out and covered her lips.
MO Ruyue was held in Ling Shoumos arms, and her mouth was covered by him.
Shh! Dont make a sound, those two are the underlings of the devil.
Hearing the mans voice, MO Ruyue realized that the two monster-like people were walking towards the castle.
Ling Shoumo only let go of MO Ruyues lips after they were far away.
However, he did not let go of MO Ruyues body.
Let me go!
MO Ruyue berated.
Damn it, this man actually took advantage of her.
MO Ruyue was extremely displeased.
Ruyue, you smell so good.
The mans maic voice rang in her ears.
But to MO Ruyues ears, it was as awkward as it could be.
Thus. MO Ruyue took out a brick from her backpack and threw it at Ling Shoumo.
Seeing the brick, Ling Shoumo quickly flew back, and his face darkened.
Master, you dont look like a master at all!
Where does Master not look like?
He actually hugged his own disciple.
MO Ruyue snorted coldly. Fortunately, this guy was fast. Otherwise, he would have been knocked out by her brick.
Her brick was no joke.
Ling Shoumo didnt like the fact that the woman in front of him was using that brick to entertain him.
It must be a brick that he took out from his storage ring!
Did Ming Sihan not hug you before?
Ling Shoumo asked.
This woman was like a delicate rose, but her entire body was full of thorns.
It was not easy to get close.
If he was not careful, he might be injured by those thorns.
Thats different!
Whats the difference? If Ming Sihan can do it to you, why cant l?
Ling Shoumo asked coldly.
Mo Ruyue snorted and ignored Ling Shoumo.
Because she was afraid that she would not be able to resist the urge to scold this man.
Didnt this guy know about her rtionship with Ming Sihan?
Where are you going?
Of course Ill save my master!
Since they were already here, it was impossible for them to go back.
No matter what, she had to see Ming Sihan.
You cant save him.
Thats none of your business. I hate you the most right now. I didnt expect you to be in cahoots with the demons!
After saying that, MO Ruyue quickly flew towards the castle.
This time, Ling Shoumo did not stop Mo Ruyue.
He stood where he was and watched the figure fly further and further away.
demon world
MO Chengfeng hurriedly gathered everyone.
Senior Brother Mo, what happened? Why are you so anxious?
Jing Xichen asked while yawning.
The sky was dark now, and he had forgotten what time it was.
Everyones lives were greatly affected.
Especially since the human world was already in a mess.
The current situation was simply a disaster for everyone and the world.
Without sunlight, nts could not grow.
The temperature was also getting colder.
In the past, two clothes were enough, but now, he might need to wear more clothes.
Even cultivators like them were like this, not to mention ordinary people.
Ruyue is missing.
MO Chengfeng spoke with a grave expression.
He did not know when Ruyue had disappeared.
What? Li Zeyan asked hurriedly. Sister is missing? What was going on?
Ruyue didnt go to look for the evil spirit alone, did she?
Baili Xi suddenly thought of something and recalled MO Ruyues expression.
At that time, he felt that there was something wrong with Ruyues expression.
It was just that he didnt think about it carefully at that time.
Its so dangerous to go looking for demons alone! Looks like we have to hurry over.
Ye Yunfeng and Ye Junlin each said one sentence.
He Xi rubbed his chin and said to MO Chengfeng, You all stay here. Its better for me to look for Ruyue.
The Demon Realm cant be without people! he emphasized.
He knew that everyone was worried about Ruyues safety, but they could not all leave the Demon Realm.
He still had to leave people in the Demon Realm.
Miracle Doctor He Xi, can you do it alone?
Mo Chengfeng had never seen He Xis strength, but he knew that this guy had superb medical skills.
He Xi smiled and replied: Of course you can. To tell you the truth, I am actually a demonic beast.
In fact, he was quite uncertain.
He was indeed a demonic beast, but Ming Sihan was also a demonic beast, and a demonic beast of a higher level than him.
If Ming Sihan didnte back safely, it would be even more difficult for him to go there.
However, at this moment, no one was more suitable than him to go to the evil devilsir.
Everyone looked at each other in shock, but they didnt say anything.
He had never expected that He Xi was actually a demonic beast.
However, this was not a big problem.
Li Zeyan looked at He Xis confession silently.
Anyway, he would never admit his identity.
However, when he heard that He Xi was going to look for his sister, he immediately said,Master, Ill go with you..
He Xi raised his eyebrows slightly.
Actually, Li Zeyan was also a demonic beast. He could feel it.
However, he did not know what kind of demonic beast this fellow was. Since Li Zeyan did not say anything, he could not be bothered to ask.
It didnt have much to do with him..
Chapter 869 - 869: Aladdin’s Magic Lamp?
Chapter 869 - 869: ddins Magic Lamp?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Zeyan, its better if you dont go and cause trouble.
Xia Zhixing said, stopping Li Zeyan from going with her.
In his eyes, Li Zeyan was just a child with no ability.
If he went with He Xi, he would only be a burden.
Li Zeyan turned around and looked at Xia Zhixing. He snorted, I want to go. I want to save my sister.
He couldnt be bothered to care about the demon lord.
He only had his sister in his heart.
Zeyan, Ruyue will definitely be unhappy if she finds out that youre disobedient.
Qi Shaoyu advised.
Ruyue usually doted on Li Zeyan, and everyone knew that.
Ruyue definitely did not want to see Li Zeyan in danger.
Master, let me go.
Li Zeyan looked at He Xi firmly.
Alright, then follow me well. He Xi thought for a while and said. Hillghost squeaked a few times, indicating that it wanted to go too.
l know. Ill bring you along too.
He Xi said helplessly. The power of the mountain ghost could not be underestimated.
Helplessly, He Xi agreed to take Li Zeyan and Hillghost to find the nest of the demons.
To save MO Ruyue, Ming Sihan, and Di Chenxiao.
The journey would be fraught with danger.
On the way, He Xi looked at Li Zeyan and said, Cant you show your true self? This way, we can travel faster.
Although what Master said makes sense, I dont want to reveal my true form yet.
Li Zeyan replied.
In fact, he was still somewhat wary of He Xi.
What if He Xi spilled the beans to her sister?
When that timees, her sister would definitely be very angry because her sister hated it when people lied to her.
Unless his sister remembered the past, he would not confess everything.
He could tell his sister about the past, but she might not believe him.
He did not want to take that risk.
Everyone is a demonic beast. Is there a need to hide it?
He Xi raised his eyebrows slightly. This Li Zeyan was quite mysterious.
What was this guys true body?
You dont look like a weasel, do you? He touched his chin and guessed.
Im not a weasel!
Li Zeyan retorted.
He was so good-looking, how could he be a weasel?
He Xi was thinking too much.
l cant. 1 dont want to carry you anymore.
As he said that, He Xinded on the ground.
Li Zeyans weight wasnt light either. It wasnt easy to fly with Li Zeyan.
Then Ill leave by myself.
Hillghost,e with me.
He called Hillghost over.
Hillghost squeaked a few times and then erged its body.
These guys were too slow. It was better to ride on it.
He Xi and Li Zeyan looked at each other. The mountain ghost had be as big as a lion. You want us to sit on your back?
He Xi asked.
Squeak
Li Zeyan had already climbed up. Master, he said to He Xi beside him, hurry up ande up.
Hes here.
He Xi said as she rode on Hillghosts back.
He didnt expect MO Ruyues pet to be so powerful that it could be used as a mount.
Under her butt was a fluffy, toot cushion.
It was quitefortable to sit on Hillghosts back.
Then, Hillghost started running.
The mountain ghost was very fast. He Xi and Li Zeyan quickly grabbed its fur.
To avoid being thrown off.
The cold wind whistled past their ears, blowing so hard that their faces could not feel anything.
The sky was very dark, and nothing could be seen on the road.
Evil Demon Castle
MO Ruyue had already broken into the castle. Although she had sneaked in, she was still discovered in the end.
It was because she had a human aura on her that she was so easily discovered.
Moreover, there was a lot of evil qi here. These evil qi were like surveince cameras. If anyone invaded, they would tell the evil spirits the news. Little human, you actually have the guts to barge into my nest!
A boorish man appeared in Mo Ruyues line of sight.
The man walked towards MO Ruyue and circled around her, his eyes filled with a maniacal smile.
Evil demon, let go of my master!
MO Ruyue had thought that the evil spirit was very scary. It turned out that he was just a rough man who looked rather demonic.
Her eyes were painted with panda eye makeup, which made her look even more evil.
Your master, who is your master? There are many people here.
The sinister devil sat on a chair at the side.
He looked at the woman with a pure soul in front of him, and a smug smile appeared on his face.
He had never seen a person with such a pure soul.
His favorite thing to do was to fill people with pure souls with greed and ambition.
This way, he could dominate this woman.
My master, Ming Sihan!
MO Ruyue reported Ming Sihans name.
The evil spirit heard MO Ruyues voice andughed heartily. So you are Ming
Sihans disciple. A man as obsessed as him actually has a disciple as pure as
Ridiculous, simply ridiculous.
Whats so funny? Whats wrong with having a deep obsession? MO Ruyue snorted.
Also, this person said that the man said that she was pure?
Dont think that she can pretend that nothing happened just because you praised her!
MO Ruyue looked displeased.
Even if you praise me to the heavens, you have to return my master to me. At this moment, Ling Shoumo came in from outside.
Lord Evil Demon, shes my disciple. Please dont lower yourself to her level, he said to the evil demon.
When the evil spirit heard this, its eyes narrowed.
Oh? But she said that she was Ming Sihans disciple. How did she be your disciple now? Ling Shoumo, are you trying to fool me?
The evil spirits expression was not good. It saw that pair of fierce eyes.
He stared at Ling Shoumo.
MO Ruyue had previously guessed that Ling Shoumo was colluding with the demons, and now it seemed that her guess waspletely correct.
This man was the leader of all the immortal sects, but he did not expect to be a traitor.
If she told everyone about this, Ling Shoumo would probably be scolded.
She is indeed my disciple.
Ling Shoumo insisted. Then, he gave MO Ruyue a look and whispered, Youre not his match. Dont provoke him. None of your business!
MO Ruyue chided in a low voice.
She came here today to save Ming Sihan.
Dont overestimate yourself.
Humph
MO Ruyue turned her head, not wanting to pay any attention to this traitor.
Everyone was working hard to resist the demons, but this guy had actually be a traitor.
Is that so? Are you his disciple? the evil spirit asked MO Ruyue coldly.
I was, but Im not now, MO Ruyue pouted and said reluctantly.
Ming Sihan is my only master. She specially adjusted it.
Interesting, very interesting.
The demon pped his hands.
Ling Shoumo wanted to say something, but he was pushed back by the evil spirit.
That guy disappeared from MO Ruyues sight.
Although MO Ruyue didnt like Ling Shoumo, she couldnt help but worry when she saw him disappear.
Where is he? Where did he go? she asked hurriedly. Why did it disappear?
Seeing that fellow was too annoying, I let him leave the castle.
He hated it when others interfered in his affairs.
I see. I also find him annoying.
MO Ruyue agreed.
Whats your name? The evil spiritughed even louder.
Im not telling you!
Alright, but thats not important. Whats important is that I have to fulfill your wish. Do you have any wishes?
Mo Ruyues expression was like an old man on the subway looking at his phone when she heard the demons voice.
What the hell?
Are you ddins Magic Lamo?
MO Ruyue asked.
He even asked her what her wish was..
Chapter 870 - 870: These Things Really Obstruct Your Eyes
Chapter 870 - 870: These Things Really Obstruct Your Eyes
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
What ddins Magic Lamp?
Its not important. Why do you want to fulfill my wish? Can you fulfill my wish?
MO Ruyue asked curiously.
Of course, as long as you want it.
The demon smiled and waited for the woman to take the bait.
MO Ruyue thought for a moment and said, Actually, what I want most now is for you to disappear and for the world to be at peace.
Other than this?
Of course, let my master go.
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes at the evil spirit. She felt that this evil spirit was a little silly.
He didnt seem very smart.
Except for this.
..Mo Ruyues lips twitched. This guy asked her what wish she had, and she told him her wish. Now, he wanted her to return it!
This demon was really a dog! Then I have no more wishes.
Was the demon ying with him?
Mo Ruyue no longer wanted to ce her hopes on this demon. Dont you want money? Power? You want a handsome man?
This MO Ruyue was tempted.
Thats not impossible.
With a wave of the evil spirits hand, mountains of gold, silver, and a throne appeared before MO Ruyues eyes. There were even countless beautiful men.
Those handsome men were all peerless and had strong muscles on their bodies. Naturally, their weapons were also powerful. F * ck..
MO Ruyue raised her hand to cover her nose and choked.
This, who could withstand this?
Then, the beautiful men walked towards MO Ruyue with smiles on their faces.
MO Ruyue subconsciously took half a step back.
In an instant, she was surrounded by beautiful men. As long as you give up on saving people, these are all yours. The evil spirit smiled, a smug expression on its face.
As expected, even the purest soul could not resist the temptation.
He watched as the soul was corrupted step by step.
MO Ruyue looked at the alluring handsome man and the mountains of gold and silver. She felt a little reluctant to part with him.
This is really hard to decide.
Although there were so many handsome men, Ming Sihan was still the prettier one.
Ming Sihans figure was naturally better.
Other than those external factors, MO Ruyue had feelings for Ming Sihan, but she had no feelings for these men in front of her.
There are so many beautiful men. Are they not as good as Ming Sihan?
MO Ruyue pushed the handsome man in front of her away and walked out of the Golden Land. Theyre indeed inferior to my Master, she said. Thats why I have to save them.
Gold and silver mountains were definitely good, but MO Ruyue was not very greedy.
The evil spirits eyes shed with disbelief.
Are you sure you dont want it? he continued.
MO Ruyue said firmly.
With a wave of his sleeve, the sinister devil vanished from sight.
The sinister devil burst intoughter.
Then, the ground beneath MO Ruyues feet cracked open. She lost her bnce and fell down rapidly.
MO Ruyue screamed.
The surroundings were dark.
It was an endless darkness.
Ruyue?
Di Chenxiaos voice sounded in the darkness.
MO Ruyue happened tond on the ground.
This demon didnt care about martial arts at all. She cursed.
Ruyue! Di Chenxiaos voice rang in her ears again.
MO Ruyue couldnt see anything. A dark, unknown fear engulfed her heart.
She didnt even dare to move. Di Chenxiao, is that you? she asked.
Its me, its me! Di Chenxiao replied excitedly.
Ruyue, why are you here?
Its all because 1 saw that you and Master hadnt returned for a long time, so I came to look for you.
Ruyue, Im so touched. You actually came all the way here just for me. Di Chenxiao was extremely touched.
Youre just passing by. MO Ruyues lips twitched. Im here for Master.
What was this guy thinking?
Why is it only you? Wheres my master?
Your master isnt with me. Shall 1e over to look for you?
Di Chenxiao said.
If you cant see, how are you going to find me?
Im trying to defame him.
I think its best to stay where we are. Wait for me. I have something to light
MO Ruyue suddenly thought of something and hurriedly took out the Heaven Severing Sword.
However, the light of the Heaven-cleaving Sword was gone.
How did this happen?
It was unbelievable.
Was it because the density of the ck was too high?
This was the most ridiculous thing she had ever seen.
Its useless. Ive used all the things that illuminate my body. Theres no way to illuminate it.
Di Chenxiao sighed.
However, Mo Ruyue was still unwilling to give up, so she took out her seven-colored fire seed.
This seven-colored fire seed was given to her by Ming Sihan when she was doing a mission.
When she took out the seven-colored fire seed, the surroundings were instantly illuminated.
Only then did she realize that this seemed to be an underground abyss. Beside her was a stone wall, and at the same time, there was a lot of ck evil qi.
Did you take out something to light it up? Di Chenxiao asked quickly.
Yes,e over if you see light.
Soon, Di Chenxiao appeared in front of MO Ruyue.
What fire is this?
Di Chenxiao asked curiously.
He had fire on him, but no matter what, he could not light it up.
This is a seven-colored fire seed, not an ordinary fire.
l see. No wonder its not destroyed. Di Chenxiao replied thoughtfully.
Ruyue, how did you get caught? he asked.
Isnt it easy for the demons to capture me? After all, youve all been captured.
The demons are too strong. I cant beat myself!
Di Chenxiao said dejectedly.
What do you mean?
The evil spirit didnt fight me. He just created an inner demon for me so that
I could fight against myself.
And then you lost to yourself?
MO Ruyue instantly understood.
Di Chenxiao sighed.
He didnt expect that he would lose so badly.
Then do you know where my master is?
l dont know, but I know that your master has fallen into an obsession.
Obsession? What obsession could my master have?
MO Ruyue was puzzled.
l dont know. After all, everyone has a side that others dont know about.
Di Chenxiao said meaningfully.
What about you? How did you fall down here?
The evil spirit tempted me, gave me mountains of gold and silver, and gave me countless beautiful men. However, Im not a superficial person, so I wont be so easily tempted. When the evil spirit saw that it couldnt tempt me, it became angry out of humiliation and brought me here. Im really speechless.
MO Ruyue sighed.
Damned demon, dont let me out, or Ill make sure his head explodes. she said angrily.
Ruyue is still the best, Di Chenxiao sneered.
He gave her a thumbs up.
Then, he approached MO Ruyue. Ruyue, shall we find the exit together?
Alright, thats the only way.
MO Ruyue nodded in agreement. She had a seven-colored fire seed in her hand that could illuminate the ce.
MO Ruyue and Di Chenxiao walked along the long corridor, surrounded by countless evil spirits.
These evil auras seemed to want to attack the two of them, but they did not dare to approach.
Moreover, their attacks were basically ineffective.
It would directly pass through a persons body.
These things are really an eyesore.
MO Ruyue said unhappily. Although they couldnt hurt her, she couldnt help but feel annoyed when she saw them attacking her.
She held the seven-colored fire seed in her hand and moved it forward.
The evil aura retreated in fear..
Chapter 871 - 871: Terrifying Venom
Chapter 871 - 871: Terrifying Venom
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
These things seem to be afraid of fire.
MO Ruyue looked at the scene in front of her as if she had discovered something new.
Therefore, she picked up the seven-colored fire seed and quickened her pace. The evil aura that was originally blocking the front dispersed one after another.
Di Chenxiao followed closely behind Mo Ruyue. He looked around to see if there was any ce to leave.
However, along the way, he did not find an exit.
There was also a stone wall above.
Ah, there seems to be no road ahead.
MO Ruyue stopped and looked at the stone wall, not knowing what to do.
Di Chenxiao stepped forward and frowned.
There should have been a road here.
He said with certainty.
How did you know? MO Ruyue looked at Di Chenxiao.
Look at the marks on the stone wall next to you.
As a wolf of the wolf tribe, he had always lived in the cave and was more familiar with the situation in the cave.
He revealed his ws, which were extremely sharp.
It could directly rip out a persons heart.
It could also shatter stone walls.
Ruyue, step back.
Di Chenxiao said. This wasnt difficult for him.
Alright, MO Ruyue hurriedly retreated. You do it.
Actually, she could also destroy the stone wall, but since this guy volunteered, she would let him do it. She would leave the opportunity to him.
Di Chenxiaos hand was surrounded by a faint white light, and the stone wall was destroyed in two moves.
With a few ngs, the originallyplete stone wall instantly turned into a pile of scattered stones. The ground was full of gravel.
There seems to be light ahead.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but shout when she saw the other side of the stone wall.
She stepped over the rubble and went straight to the other side.
However, the evil energy did not dare toe over.
Yes.
Di Chenxiao responded. He had also seen the light.
Thus, he followed MO Ruyue.
Finally, they walked out. All they saw were white bones.
This
MO Ruyue turned around and saw a skull staring at her with its ck eyes.
MO Ruyue felt her scalp tingle.
It was as if he had barged into the house of the White Bone Demon.
Why are there so many human bones here?
Di Chenxiao had an ominous premonition.
We didnt just leave the tigers den and enter the wolfs den, did we? MO Ruyue approached Di Chenxiao and asked.
The surroundings were quiet. The chandelier made of skulls was burning with blue ghost fire.
The atmosphere was terrifyingly quiet.
Mo Ruyue silently took out the brick. He carefully observed his surroundings. This is not my nest.
Di Chenxiao, the Wolf King, retorted.
How could Ruyue say that?
MO Ruyue couldnt help butugh out loud when she heard Di Chenxiaos words.
He had almost forgotten that this guy was a wolf. Should we continue moving forward?
MO Ruyue straightened her face and asked casually.
We can only move forward. We have no way out.
Di Chenxiao didnt feel afraid when he saw the white bones. However, the woman beside him seemed a little afraid.
Are you afraid of these skeletons? Nonsense, arent you afraid?
Im not afraid. Whats there to be afraid of?
Di Chenxiao shrugged his shoulders. He didnt know what he was afraid of.
To him, it seemed quite spectacr.
Thats right. Youre not a real person. Why would you be afraid?
MO Ruyue said thoughtfully.
Generally speaking, humans were not afraid of the corpses of any animals, but they were very afraid of the corpses of their own kind.
Di Chenxiao was a wolf, so it was normal for him not to be afraid of human bones.
Perhaps this guy treated people as food.
If these bones were all wolf bones, would you be afraid?
A little.
Di Chenxiao thought for a moment. If there were only wolf bones here, he should still be afraid.
At this time, Di Chenxiao grabbed the woman beside him.
Whats wrong?
MO Ruyue stopped in her tracks and asked curiously.
She turned around and looked at Di Chenxiao.
Listen, there seems to be a sound. Di Chenxiaos face darkened.
MO Ruyue held her breath and shook her head. She did not hear anything at all.
However, she believed in Di Chenxiao because he was the Wolf King. His hearing must be better than hers.
Then, Di Chenxiao carried MO Ruyue and flew up to the stone wall.
Hey, you
This guy was touching her without her consent?
MO Ruyue was a little unhappy.
Shh, look!
Di Chenxiao lowered his voice and looked at the thing that was crawling over from afar.
MO Ruyue looked over from the ground.
A huge scorpion crawled in from the outside. There were two corpses hanging from the scorpions poisonous hook.
Scorpion crawled over.
The scorpion crawled into the corner.
Then, he ced the two corpses on the poison hook in a corner.
What is Scorpion doing?
Mo Ruyue asked softly.
Her back was pressed against Di Chenxiaos chest, and she could feel the heat of his body through his clothes.
Di Chenxiao pursed his lips and sniffed. Why is it so fragrant?
Body fragrance!
MO Ruyue replied unhappily. What was this guy doing? It smells good.
Di Chenxiao said casually.
Look, there seem to be a lot of small scorpions over there, I know. The big scorpion will feed the small scorpion with human corpses.
MO Ruyue also saw the ck mass of scorpions in the corner.
A momentter, only white bones were left of the two corpses.
Then, the big scorpion left and crawled under their feet.
They did not notice them the entire time.
After making sure that the big scorpion had left, Di Chenxiao carried MO
Ruyue back to the ground.
We must kill these little scorpions here!
MO Ruyue said coldly.
After eating so many people, he definitely couldnt let them go.
Ipletely agree with what you said, Ruyue. Di Chenxiao showed his sharp ws.
He was prepared to kill these little scorpions.
MO Ruyue also took out her Ghost Sense from her storage ring.
Those small scorpions did not have strong offensive abilities, but they were not small either.
Each of them was about the size of arge turtle, and their shells were extremely hard. Ordinary swords could not hurt them at all.
However, they were unlucky enough to encounter MO Ruyue, who possessed the Heaven ying Sword and Ghost Sense.
MO Ruyue flew up and stabbed the sword in her hand into the body of a small scorpion.
The little scorpions poisonous hook was raised, and what it touched was Gui Nians sword body.
Di Chenxiao wasnt idle. His ws were much harder than the scorpions shell.
After some effort, almost all the little scorpions had died here.
MO Ruyue took a deep breath.
Not good, the big scorpion seems to be back.
Di Chenxiao cried out in surprise. He quickly grabbed MO Ruyues hand and hugged her in his arms. Then, he quickly jumped onto the stone wall.
MO Ruyue had yet to react.
Big Scorpion, who had just left, came back in a panic.
Perhaps it sensed that something had happened to the little scorpion, so the big scorpion went and returned.
When the big scorpion came back, all the small scorpions had died. Not a single one was left.
When the big scorpion saw this, he was furious.
She sarcastically destroyed the entire stone cave. The poisonous hook was svvung randomly. Once it stabbed into the stone wall, it would be able to poke a hole in the stone wall.
Ruyue, you go from the left and Ill go from the right. Lets attack together?
Alright.
MO Ruyue replied and took out the Heaven-cleaving Sword.
Then, the two of them appeared beside the big scorpion.
The big scorpion knew that these two people must have killed its child.
Therefore, he attacked the two of them like crazy.
Big Scorpion had be aplete lunatic.
MO Ruyue and Di Chenxiao dodged left and right. As long as they avoided the poisonous hook, it would be much easier to deal with the big scorpion.
The poisonous hook secreted venom.
When the venom touched the rocks on the stone wall, the rocks were corroded.
It looked quite powerful..
Chapter 872 - 872: Ptui, Dog!
Chapter 872 - 872: Ptui, Dog!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
MO Ruyue only wanted to chop off the scorpions tail.
As long as he cut off its tail, he would see how it would attack people.
Di Chenxiaos ws scratched the scorpions pincers, causing sparks to fly.
There was a strange smell in the air.
nAh
MO Ruyue shouted as she dodged the poisonous hooks frontal attack. She bent the sword in her hand, and the Heaven-cleaving Sword swept across the scorpions tail.
With a whoosh, the scorpions tail fell to the ground, and a stream of venom oozed out from the wound.
It instantly corroded the shell of the big scorpion.
Everything looked so terrifying.
On the other side, Di Chenxiao had also crippled the two pincers of the big scorpion.
Without a lethal weapon, the big scorpion was no longer a threat.
In the end, MO Ruyue stabbed the scorpion with her sword, and it waspletely killed.
After the dust settled, MO Ruyue took out a handkerchief from her storage ring and wiped the sword clean.
After that, she put the two swords back into her storage ring.
Do you want to deal with these corpses? Ruyue, how do you want to deal with this?
Di Chenxiao asked.
These scorpions werepletely dead, so they probably wouldnt have a chance to resurrect.
Why dont we burn it down?
MO Ruyue took out a seven-colored fire seed.
Its not impossible.
Di Chenxiao thought about it and felt that it was feasible.
However, the scorpions body was too big. The two of them probably couldnt move it.
Therefore, he could only pile up the small scorpions here and burn them
together with the big scorpions.
Logically speaking, it was not suitable to start a fire in the cave. This would cause the people in the cave tock oxygen.
However, the big scorpion had just found food from outside, which meant that this ce should not be too far from the outside.
Therefore, after the fire burned, they could leave this ce directly.
There was no need to worry that the fire would spread to other ces.
After lighting the fire, MO Ruyue and Di Chenxiao nced at each other and then left.
They walked forward and soon saw an exit.
Were finally out of here, MO Ruyue said in surprise.
Dont be happy too early.
Di Chenxiao said lightly.
MO Ruyues smile disappeared. It was indeed not too early to be happy.
Ming Sihan hadnt been rescued yet.
When they reached the entrance of the cave, they realized that they were on the edge of a cliff.
If it was an ordinary person, they would probably copse.
However, MO Ruyue and Di Chenxiao were not ordinary people.
MO Ruyue stood up and returned to the cliff.
Di Chenxiao turned into a wolf and jumped onto the cliff with the help of the bulge on the stone wall.
When he reached the top of the cliff, he returned to his human appearance.
We came out, but the sky is still dark! MO Ruyue was a little annoyed.
It seemed that he had to kill the evil spirit.
Otherwise, they would never see the light of day, and humans would die sooner orter.
Your master hasnt been rescued yet. Do we still have to go back and save your master?
Hearing Di Chenxiaos words, the happiness in MO Ruyues heart instantly disappeared.
Indeed, we have to save Master, she said with a worried expression.
Ill go to the old nest of the Evil Demons.
Ill go with you.
No, no, I finally saved you. Are you going to die with me again?
If you dont let me go, then what should I do?
Di Chenxiao said helplessly.
It was unrealistic to go back and ask for reinforcements.
They couldnt do anything to the demons? Could it be that the reinforcements were more powerful than them?
Why dont you wait outside? If I donte out, youll think of a way to save me? Or ask for reinforcements?
MO Ruyue thought for a moment. This seemed to be the only way.
They couldnt just go in and be killed by the demons.
For some reason, MO Ruyue felt that searching for demons was like clearing a game.
Everything seemed to be going ording to the script.
Alright, Ill wait for you outside.
Di Chenxiao didnt insist and agreed to MO Ruyues arrangement.
The woman in front of him was much more powerful than him.
Moreover, he was covered in treasures.
He had heard MO Ruyue mention that the evil spirit had a pure soul, so he assumed that the evil spirit would not be able to do anything to her.
Thinking of this, Di Chenxiao was relieved.
For some reason, he felt that this woman in front of him was very powerful.
Although it didnt seem powerful.
MO Ruyue returned to the devils castle. She was familiar with the ce.
Ruyue, you
Ling Shoumo was stunned when he saw MO Ruyue appear in front of him.
Wasnt Ruyue locked up by a demon?
MO Ruyue shot a nce at Ling Shoumo and said in a low voice, Ptui,ckey!
She looked down on the man in front of her from the bottom of her heart.
The sect master of the righteous sect actually bowed to the evil force.
The people of the Demon Realm had more backbone than Ling Shoumo.
In any case, it was impossible for them topromise and lower their heads to the demons!
Ruyue, why did youe back?
Ling Shoumo felt upset when he heard the wordckey.
He guessed that Ruyue must have found a way to escape from the imprisonment.
However, he did not understand why Ruyue had returned.
I want to save my master! MO Ruyue snorted and ignored Ling Shoumo.
Ruyue
Ling Shoumo looked at MO Ruyues back and felt lost.
MO Ruyue came to the evil spirit again.
Demon, hand over my master!
She was aggressive and looked at the evil spirit angrily.
The evil spirit looked at MO Ruyue in front of him and felt a trace of surprise. You actually escaped.
Yeah, Im so capable. Isnt it normal for me to escape? Cut the crap. Hurry up and hand over my master!
MO Ruyue snorted coldly.
The evil spirit looked at the woman in front of him and smiled. Youre really loyal to your master.
Thats because my master is worth it. If it were anyone else, I would betray them at any moment.
For example, Ling Shoumo could easily betray him.
Humans were all rtive.
How did others treat her? Naturally, she would treat others differently.
Since you want to see your master so much, Ill send you to him!
The woman in front of him was not seduced by him at all. If she was not seduced by him, then she could not be controlled by him.
What a troublesome woman.
Then, the evil spirit waved its sleeve, and MO Ruyue fell down.
This time, the ce where she fell was no longer pitch-ck. The surroundings were filled with red light. The red light was emitted by the red gem.
Aiya, f * ck!
MO Ruyue fell to the ground. She held her waist and gasped.
If an ordinary person had fallen, they would have been smashed into pieces.
Fortunately, she was a cultivator.
Looking around, it was actually some underground iron prisons. All kinds of demon beasts were imprisoned in the iron prison.
Another neer.
Wait, why isnt he locked up?
It should be a human. Well know by smelling it.
Maybe hes an aplice of the demons.
Hurry up and let us out.
Woman, let us out quickly.
His ears were filled with the voices of those demon beasts.
MO Ruyue nced at the demonic beasts and couldnt help but sigh in her heart. She didnt expect there to be so many demonic beasts in this ce.
She got up from the ground and nced at the demonic beasts in the cell.
Youre demonic beasts after all. Why are you tied up in a cell?
Demonic beasts were all capable. It was impossible for these guys to not even have the ability to escape from the prison, right?
Looking at Hillghost and Di Chenxiao, they were both very powerful.
Why couldnt these demon beasts do it?
Chapter 873 - 873: The Tortoise and the Turtle
Chapter 873 - 873: The Tortoise and the Turtle
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
This is not an ordinary prison cell. An ordinary prison cell cant trap us at all.
Woman, its not a demon beast. So you can definitely destroy these cells and let us out.
All the demon beasts ced their hopes on this person in front of them. He stared at the woman in front of him, hoping that she would let them go.
Why are you locked up here? MO Ruyue asked hesitantly.
Naturally, we dont want to be theckeys of the demons. Thats why were trapped here.
Thats right. This demon isnt very powerful. It only knows how to use things to control us.
Let us out, woman. Let us out now. The demonic beasts shouted.
Alright, Ill try.
MO Ruyue directly chose a cell with a seemingly weaker demonic beast. She took out the Heaven-cleaving Sword from her storage ring. The Heaven-cleaving Sword emitted a dazzling light.
She held the hilt of her sword and shed at the cell.
In the end, he found that the cell was unmoved.
Eh? Its not effective at all.
The corner of MO Ruyues mouth twitched. This cell was indeed not an ordinary cell.
One had to know that the Heaven-cleaving Sword was not an ordinary sword. Something that even the Heaven-cleaving Sword could not resolve was definitely not simple.
Youre right. He looked at the human-demon beast in the cell and said helplessly, Look at this. I really have no way to open your cell!
It wasnt that she didnt want to save him, but that the cell was too sturdy.
What kind of material was this cell made of? It was a little too sturdy.
MO Ruyues heart was filled with doubts.
The hope in the eyes of the demon beasts instantly turned into disappointment.
They had thought that this woman in front of them could take them away from here, but now it seemed that everything had be a wild hope.
Their hopes were instantly shattered.
Seeing that this woman could not save them, everyone returned to their seats and continued to be silent.
He thought that his savior hade, but it turned out that he was happy for nothing.
MO Ruyue put away the Heaven-cleaving Sword in her hand and searched the cells one by one to see if Ming Sihan was locked up here.
However, after looking around, she didnt see Ming Sihan.
Her eyes turned cold. Didnt the demon say that he would send her to see her master? Why didnt she see her master?
Have you seen my master?
Nio Ruyue asked.
What kind of demonic beast is your master?
A warm-hearted demonic beast asked.
MO Ruyue looked at him and said seriously, My master is not a demonic beast. Hes just a human.
All the people imprisoned here are demonic beasts. Ordinary people wouldnt be imprisoned here. Youvee to the wrong ce, right?
The demonic beast slowly said.
Thats impossible. That evil demon said he would send me to see my master, and then I came here.
MO Ruyue exined.
There were about a hundred demon beasts here, and many of them had transformed into their original forms and were Iving on the ground.
She didnt see Ming Sihan.
This is the ce where the demonic beasts are imprisoned. The demon put you here, which means that your master is a demonic beast!
Impossible!
MO Ruyue was stunned. She thought about Ming Sihans appearance.
The man was so handsome, like a demon god in a painting. He had long silver-white hair and dark red eyes. How could it be a demonic beast?
She did not believe this fact.
Take a good look for yourself. Perhaps your master is here.
MO Ruyue was speechless and could only continue searching.
Was Ming Sihan really a demonic beast?
If they were together, wouldnt it be an interracial rtionship? Would the child born like this be half-human and half-demon?
Nio Ruyues mind was filled with questions.
My master shouldnt be a weasel. It shouldnt be a pheasant either.
Bastard shouldnt be either, right?
MO Ruyue stopped outside a cell and stared at the bastard in the cell thoughtfully.
Im not a turtle! Im a turtle! the turtle said angrily.
Ahem, same, same!
MO Ruyue didnt expect that this bastard would actually listen to her words.
He immediately felt a little awkward.
He hurriedly exined.
How is it the same? Itspletely different. Its impossible for a turtle to be a demon beast.
The turtle retorted unhappily.
Someone actually called him a bastard.
This woman was really blind.
MO Ruyue walked to the end and saw a ck dragon lying motionless on the ground.
Looking at the ck dragon in front of her, MO Ruyue thought of the little snake she used to raise.
She could not help but sigh softly.
That was because the little snake had disappeared.
He never appeared again.
However, why was the ck Dragon in the cell not moving at all? Could he be dead?
Hey, little ck Dragon! Are you alright? MO Ruyue shouted from outside the cell.
The little ck Dragon did not respond.
A man in the cell next door slowly said, Stop shouting. Hes trapped in an obsession, unless he can walk out of it himself.
MO Ruyue turned to look at the man in the cell next door.
That man seemed to have transformed from a mountain ghost. He was as beautiful as a woman. His white hair was like Di Chenxiaos, which was especially eye-catching.
The man looked at MO Ruyue. He had seen this woman before.
Wheres the little mountain ghost beside you?
The man asked coldly. Did this woman kill the little mountain ghost?
How did you know that I have a little mountain ghost by my side? MO Ruyue was stunned.
She looked at the man curiously.
The man slowly stood up and stared at MO Ruyue with murderous eyes. You just have to answer me. Where did the little mountain ghost beside you
This ce is so dangerous, of course I didnt let the little mountain ghost follow me!
MO Ruyue replied. Hillghost should be with Li Zeyan now.
How did you know that I have a mountain ghost by my side? she asked, scrutinizing the man in front of her.
Because Ive seen you before.
The man said lightly. He was relieved to know that Hillghost was fine.
MO Ruyue was stunned. Youve seen me before, but why dont I have any impression of me?
Ive seen you before, but that doesnt mean youve seen me before.
Do you know about the Treasure Gathering Pavilion?
Of course, I used to sell things there.
MO Ruyue said without hesitation. It was all thanks to the Treasure Gathering Pavilion that she had gotten her first bucket of gold.
It was a good ce.
But what did that ce have to do with this man?
l am the boss behind Treasure Trove Pavilion.
You are the boss behind Treasure Trove Pavilion.
MO Ruyue was still shocked.
Then, he shook his head and clicked his tongue. I never thought that the behind-the-scenes boss was actually a mountain ghost!
What a pity. Now that the demons are wreaking havoc in the human world, your Treasure Gathering Pavilion can only close down, right?
There were so many chain stores in so many countries. This guy was very rich.
It doesnt matter. Thats not important.
Isnt that important?
There were so many chain stores, but all of them were gone. How heartbreaking would that be?
MO Ruyue felt sorry for the man in front of her.
Money is useless to me.
Then why did you open the Treasure Gathering Pavilion?
Its just an interest to kill time.
Hearing the mans bold words, MO Ruyue was speechless.
However, she quickly remembered that she was here to look for Ming Sihan..
Chapter 874 - 874: Is This Ming Sihan?
Chapter 874 - 874: Is This Ming Sihan?
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
I have to go find my master.
You dont have to look for him. Your master is inside.
Where?
The ck dragon over here is your master, Ming Sihan!
The man spoke calmly and nced at the ck dragon beside him.
Really?
Youre really a failure as a disciple. You cant even tell what kind of demonic beast your master is.
The manughed mockingly. He felt that the woman in front of him was a little ridiculous.
l didnt even know my Master was a demonic beast! MO Ruyue muttered softly.
Naturally, I dont know what kind of demonic beast it is.
How could she be med for this?
Who asked this man to never tell her?
By the way, whats your name?
MO Ruyue asked. This guy had provided her with such useful information and clues. If she could get out of here, she would definitely save this man.
There was absolutely no objection.
Qingxuan.
Qingxuan said indifferently.
He did not expect this woman to ask for his name.
My name is MO Ruyue.
l know.
I was afraid that you wouldnt know, so I told you. MO Ruyue exined awkwardly.
This guy looked so cold.
She didnt know if the name he said was real or fake.
However, there was no need to lie to her, right?
Mo Ruyue then took out her Ghost Sense. The Heaven-cleaving Sword couldnt open the cell.
He could only try using his ghost thoughts.
It might be useful.
Of course, she knew that the chances were slim.
However, he was still prepared to give it a try.
When her sword shed down, the prison cell was actually opened.
All of this stunned all the demonic beasts.
MO Ruyue was also stunned.
The Heaven-cleaving Sword could not do it, but Ghost Thought could.
Beside her, a strange look shed in Qingxuans eyes. It seemed like she could be saved.
The main thing was to see if this woman would save him.
If this woman was unwilling, he had no choice. l didnt expect Ghost Sense toe in handy! This sword was given to her by Ming Sihan.
What a good sword.
Previously, he had thought that Ghost Thought was inferior to Heaven Severing. Now, he felt that Ghost Thought and Heaven Severing were the same.
Each had their own good points.
Let us out!
The demonic beasts in the cells nearby shouted loudly. They stared at MO Ruyue as if they had seen hope.
This woman could actually destroy the prison cells here.
However, MO Ruyue did not pay any attention to the other demonic beasts.
Instead, she struck Qingxuans cell, and cracks instantly appeared in the cell.
With another sh, the cell waspletely split open.
Why are you helping me? Qingxuan asked.
The demon beasts that are locked up here must be enemies with the demons.
If they are enemies, then we are allies. Helping an ally is helping ourselves. Isnt this logic right?
MO Ruyue asked.
She felt that Qingxuan was reliable, which was why she was so quick to save this fellow.
That seems to make sense.
Qingxuan thought about it and felt that this woman was right.
Its just that Im not sure if I should save them. Qingxuan, can you give me your opinion?
You believe me?
Since were allies, I can definitely trust you for the time being.
Then lets save them all.
They were all demonic beasts, and they were all locked up here without seeing the light of day.
Although the sun could not be seen outside, it was still better than this narrow environment.
Alright then.
MO Ruyue agreed.
Please help me look after my master.
Sure.
Qingxuan nodded and nced at the ck dragon on the ground.
She did not know why this mans obsession was so deep that it was still in his obsession.
If he didnt get out of his obsession, he would always be in this state.
MO Ruyue went out and released all the other demonic beasts. After thanking them, the demonic beasts went to find the exit.
After all the demonic beasts had left, MO Ruyue returned to Qingxuans side.
Qingxuan, you should leave as well. Ill stay here and guard my master, she said with a solemn expression.
Lets leave together. The most important thing now is to wake your master up.
Qingxuan wasnt in a hurry to leave. Since she had already been released from the prison, it was only a matter of time before she left.
MO Ruyue didnt know how to wake the man from his obsession.
She went to the ck dragons side and squatted down, At first, she did not dare to touch the ck dragon.
Dont be afraid, Qingxuan said. He cant hurt you now.
Qingxuan, what should I do to awaken my master?
MO Ruyue reached out and stroked the ck dragons horns, then touched its ck scales.
Could it be that she wanted to p him a few times and wake him up?
At this moment, MO Ruyue was at a loss.
He could only seek help from Qingxuan, and see if this fellow knew any method to wake up the person in his obsession.
You have to enter his dream.
Qingxuan pursed her lips.
MO Ruvue was stunned. It was the first time she had heard such a thing.
How do I enter his dream?
Was this not a joke?
Im sleeping, Qingxuan said slowly.
l can only dream about myself when I sleep. How can I barge into his dreams?
l can help you with that.
Qingxuan gave MO Ruyue a reassuring look.
At present, MO Ruyue could only believe this mans words. Although she knew it was a little risky, she had no other choice.
MO Ruyueid down beside the ck dragon and slowly closed her eyes.
She quickly fell asleep.
However, she did not see Ming Sihan for a long time. She remembered her purpose.
She was afraid that she would forget her purpose foring here in her dreams.
Qingxuan saw that MO Ruyue had already fallen asleep. Then, she used her spell to make MO Ruyue enter Ming Sihans obsession.
After doing all of this, Qingxuan sat down to meditate and wait.
He checked the situation here.
As long as there were any unusual movements, he would separate MO Ruyue from Ming Sihans obsession.
MO Ruyue came to Ming Sihans obsession. It was stormy and the sky was filled with lightning and thunder.
The raindrops fell on her body with a hint of coldness.
This cold feeling was unbearable.
Master!
MO Ruyue shouted. She hadnt seen that man yet.
Surrounded by waves, she was standing on a reef that had emerged from the sea. The seawater was surging against the reef under her feet.
Everything seemed so terrifying.
The sky was covered with dark clouds and lightning shed. She was afraid that she would be hit by the lightning.
MO Ruyue swallowed her saliva and frowned.
The sound of the wind and waves had long drowned out her voice.
After some thought, MO Ruyue summoned the Heaven Executioner and Ghost Sense in her dream, but it was useless.
Could it be that in Ming Sihans obsession, he couldnt summon the Heaven ying Sword and the Ghost Will?
Other than the reef under her feet, there was an endless ocean around her.
She did not know what to do anymore,
If he used all his cultivation to fly, he wouldnt be able tost long. He needed a temporary ce to rest.
He couldnt possibly fly out ande back, right?
Just as MO Ruyue was in a daze, she saw a huge ck dragon rushing out of the water.
The giant dragon roared, and MO Ruyue felt her ears ringing.
Was this Ming Sihan?
Chapter 875 - 875: You Definitely Can’t Leave Me Behind!
Chapter 875 - 875: You Definitely Cant Leave Me Behind!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Master?
MO Ruyue shouted. In order to attract the ck Dragons attention, she flew up.
Then, he stood in front of the ck dragon.
The ck dragons eyes were as big asnterns. MO Ruyue looked extremely small in front of the ck dragon.
At this moment, MO Ruyue noticed that the ck Dragons eyes were cold, cruel, and unfamiliar.
The ck dragon roared and flung MO Ruyue into the sea with its tail.
F*ck, even my master has never hit me like this.
MO Ruyue shouted as she fell into the sea.
After a long time, she did not continue falling. She could not see anything in the dark sea.
Her internal organs were squeezed by the seawater, but she did not feel ufortable. She could even breathe freely in the water.
At this moment, MO Ruyue noticed a light at the bottom, so she swam towards it.
When she arrived, she realized that the light was emitted by Ming Sihans body.
Ruyue, why are you here?
Ming Sihan looked at the woman walking towards him and was slightly stunned.
Master, Im here to take you away. MO Ruyue swam to Ming Sihans side and said.
Ruyue, leave quickly. Its dangerous here!
Ming Sihans hands and feet were bound by iron chains.
He could not move.
At this moment, the ck dragon that had left returned.
Im not leaving, Master. Everything youre facing now is your obsession. Im going to take you out of it.
Mo Ruyue said firmly.
At this moment, the ck dragon opened its bloody mouth at MO Ruyue, as if it was going to swallow her whole.
Mo Ruyue nimbly hid behind Ming Sihan. If the ck dragon had the ability, it would swallow Ming Sihan and her into its stomach.
Seeing that MO Ruyue had dodged, the ck dragon moved sideways to avoid Ming Sihan.
Obviously, the ck dragon didnt attack Ming Sihan.
Master, who is this ck dragon?
Mo Ruyue asked curiously.
l dont know.
Ming Sihan shook his head. When he opened his eyes, he saw the ck dragon.
He was thrown into the dead silent sea, and no one cared about him.
He was the one who was abandoned.
He did not understand why he was abandoned.
Why did those people abandon him?
Master, everything here is fake. We have to leave this ce. No, its true. Ruyue, they dont want me
Ming Sihans voice was filled with sorrow and destion.
His eyes glowed with silver light.
His dark red eyes were filled with unwillingness.
MO Ruyue walked up to Ming Sihan and looked at his injured state. MO Ruyue suddenly felt sorry for the man in front of her.
What had he encountered?
Master, why do you say that?
MO Ruyue didnt know much about Ming Sihans past. She only found out that Ming Sihan was a demonic beast not long ago.
Ming Sihan looked at the ck dragon hovering above him and said, They have trapped me here for many, many years. It has been almost thirty years
Why are they doing this to me? Why did you leave me here?
Ruyue, will you leave me behind too?
Ming Sihans mind was filled with memories of the past, and there was a hint of fear in his voice.
Ever since he could remember, he had been trapped at the bottom of the sea by iron chains. He had grown up slowly from a small child.
Later on, a war broke out between the demonic beasts at the bottom of the sea. The iron chains that bound him were cut off, and he was finally free.
No, I wont leave you here. We have to go back together.
Master, we have to go back together.
MO Ruyue didnt know what had happened to Ming Sihan, but seeing that he was not in a good mood, she knew that something terrible must have happened to him.
Was he chained to the bottom of the sea?
And this locksted for decades.
Just thinking about it made MO Ruyues hair stand on end.
She hugged Ming Sihan tightly and said, I will never leave you behind. No matter what happens in the future, we can face it together.
Ah Ming, trust me, okay?
MO Ruyue whispered in Ming Sihans ear. Ruyue, you said it yourself. You cant leave me behind!
Yes, I definitely wont leave it behind.
Perhaps MO Ruyues words worked, Ming Sihan let down his guard and chose to believe MO Ruyue.
The iron chain immediately loosened and creaked.
With a series of ear-piercing sounds, the surrounding stone pirs copsed.
The entire environment began to copse.
MO Ruyue was sucked away by a force and lost control of herself.
Suddenly, MO Ruyue opened her eyes and took deep breaths.
She shouted, Master!
Looking closely, the ck dragon in front of him had already transformed into a mans body.
Ming Sihans eyshes trembled slightly and she slowly opened her eyes.
A pair of dark red eyes were looking at the girl in front of him affectionately.
Ruyue, is what you promised me true?
Ming Sihan asked again to confirm.
His tone was calm. He remembered everything clearly.
MO Ruyues face reddened slightly when she met his affectionate eyes. She coughed lightly and said, Of course Im telling the truth.
Really?
Of course.
As the two of them spoke, they didnt ce Qingxuan in their eyes at all.
Qingxuan looked at the two of them and slowly said, We should leave this ce now.
Only then did MO Ruyue notice that there was an extrarge third wheel beside her.
She was a little shy. She quickly stood up from the ground and patted the dust off her body.
Master, we really should leave this ce,
Alright.
Ming Sihan responded. He seemed to only see MO Ruyues figure and no one
He stood up and naturally held MO Ruyues hand.
Lets go.
He pulled MO Ruyue out.
Qingxuan couldnt help but rub her nose when she saw this scene. Why did she feel like she was a little redundant?
If he had known earlier, he wouldnt have waited here.
Outside, Di Chenxiao was waiting for MO Ruyue on a rock.
However, he did not see MO Ruyue. Instead, he saw many demonic beasts leaving the castle.
Did something happen to Ruyue?
Di Chenxiao said to himself.
At this moment, he felt a familiar aura approaching and immediately became alert.
He stood up from the rock and found that Hillghost, Li Zeyan, and He Xi had all appeared here.
Brother Zeyan, youre here too!
When Di Chenxiao saw Li Zeyan, he couldnt help but exim, and a smile appeared on his serious face.
He was very happy that Zeyans younger brother hade over.
At the same time, he was also a little worried.
Brother Zeyan, did youe here to save me?
Di Chenxiao asked expectantly as he stared at Li Zeyan.
He hoped that Li Zeyan would give him an affirmative answer.
Li Zeyan rolled his eyes at Di Chenxiao. Dont be narcissistic. Im not here for you. Im here for my sister.
Why are you alone? Wheres my sister? Li Zeyan asked. He didnt want to see Di Chenxiao at all. This guy was fine.
Your sister is still inside!
Di Chenxiao, are you still a man? My sister is inside, but youre outside. Im afraid youre a coward!
When Li Zeyan heard that his sister was still inside, he immediately lost hisposure.
This guy was really amazing. He left all the danger outside to his sister.
She looked at Di Chenxiao and got angry.
Your sister asked me to stay outside. She still has to save her master!
Di Chenxiao said innocently.
He just didnt want to drag them down.
Its all excuses.
Li Zeyan snorted, his face full of anger..
Chapter 876 - 876: Reinforcements Have Arrived
Chapter 876 - 876: Reinforcements Have Arrived
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Di Chenxiao opened his mouth, but he had nothing to say.
He Xi looked at the two of them and said, Stop arguing. We are here to save people.
Just as they were talking, three figures came over.
Sister!
Li Zeyan immediately shouted when he heard MO Ruyues voice.
Fortunately, his sister was fine.
If something happened to his sister, he was prepared to ignore Di Chenxiao for the rest of his life.
Zeyan, why are you here? Dont you know that this ce is very dangerous?
MO Ruyue looked at Li Zeyan, and her face darkened.
He Xi, why did you bring Zeyan to such a dangerous ce? he asked.
I didnt want to bring him here. He insisted oning. He Xi nced at Li Zeyan and shrugged helplessly.
At this time, he did not want to take the me.
After all, they had agreed beforehand.
Sister, this has nothing to do with Master. I wanted toe.
Li Zeyan said softly, looking aggrieved.
MO Ruyue did not continue to me him for admitting his mistake.
When Hillghost saw Qingxuan, he blinked his eyes.
Youre here too? Qingxuan walked over to Hillghost and asked gently.
Squeak, squeak, squeak
Hillghost hurriedly nodded.
Although it was not very powerful, it was still a force to be reckoned with.
He looked at Qingxuan happily.
Qingxuan rubbed Hillghosts head. It would still take a long time for this fellow to turn into a human.
Are you alright? He Xi looked at Ming Sihan and asked.
Yes, its alright.
Ming Sihan responded. Even when he was replying to He Xi, his eyes were still on MO Ruyue.
Since everyone is here, lets go deal with the demons together, shall we? MO Ruyue nced at everyone,
As long as the evil spirits were not eliminated, they would not be able to see the sun.
For the sake of the sun, for the sake of all living beings, for the sake of themselves, they had to face the evil spirit head-on.
MO Ruyue had already met the evil spirit twice, and it didnt seem to have much ability.
Perhaps the demon had not used its true power yet, but MO Ruyue could not care less.
Sooner orter, a life-and-death battle would begin. Since everyone was here, he would start directly.
He couldnt count on the others, so he could only rely on them.
Lets wait for another two hours.
At this moment, Ming Sihan spoke.
He took out a piece of paper and muttered something silently.
Then, he casually threw the paper in his hand, and the paper instantly turned into countless small moths.
The little moth immediately dispersed and disappeared from everyones sight.
Master, what are we waiting for? Mo Ruyue asked curiously. Wait for the others!
Who is it?
Youll know when the timees.
Do you want to leave first? MO Ruyue asked Qingxuan while waiting.
Because there will really be a warter. The opponent was an unfathomable evil spirit.
I wont be a deserter. Qingxuan said indifferently.
Upon hearing Qingxuans words, MO Ruyue began to admire this man.
They were all hot-blooded men.
The only person she was worried about was Li Zeyan.
When the time came, Li Zeyan could just hide at the side and watch the battle,
MO Ruyue walked up to Li Zeyan with a serious expression.
Sister?
Li Zeyan looked at MO Ruyues serious expression and couldnt help but worry.
Was his sister ming him?
How terrifying.
He didnt even dare to speak.
When the fight starts, find a ce to hide yourself, understand?
Li Zeyan had no cultivation at all.
Back then, he had told him to focus on his cultivation, but this fellow had simply not listened.
MO Ruyue was most worried about Li Zeyan.
She definitely wouldnt be able to take care of Li Zeyan if they fought. She hoped that Li Zeyan would be smart and hide himself well.
Sister, I can actually join the battle.
Li Zeyan muttered softly. His sister had underestimated him.
However, he did not dare to refute his sister loudly, afraid that he would make her unhappy.
Join your head. Do you think fighting is childs y?
MO Ruyue couldnt help butin. This guy was too simple-minded.
She rolled her eyes.
He didnt care about the war at all.
In a while, their opponents were demons!
Li Zeyan pouted. Sister, are you concerned about Zeyan?
Ming Sihan nced at Li Zeyan. Why did he feel like this guy was asking for a beating?
Youre so weak. Anyone would care about you.
Ming Sihan said unhappily.
What was Li Zeyan thinking?
Hearing Ming Sihans words, Li Zeyan was a little unconvinced.
This guy was just envious and jealous. Just as he was about to retort, he heard his sister beside him say, Stop arguing. Li Zeyan then shut his mouth. When the fight starts, leave Li Zeyan to me.
Di Chenxiao volunteered.
After saying that, she shot Li Zeyan a flirtatious look.
Im sorry, I dont need your care, Li Zeyan said.
And take care of him?
It was already pretty good that this guy could take care of himself.
He didnt need Di Chenxiao to take care of him at all.
Not long after, everyone felt the ground shake. It seemed that a ck mass of reinforcements had rushed over from afar.
Whats that?
Di Chenxiao looked into the distance, his eyes full of curiosity.
Because it was too dark, he couldnt see what was over there.
MO Ruyue felt that it was a little familiar.
Reinforcements have arrived.
Ming Sihan said lightly and nodded slightly as he watched the reinforcements rush over.
He saw Shangguan Sheing over with his subordinates.
When he saw Ming Sihan, he respectfully knelt down on one knee. Subordinate greets Demon Venerable!
Youre finally here.
Ming Sihan said lightly.
Shangguan She replied and then looked at MO Ruyue.
When this subordinate received the news, I rushed here without stopping. I shouldnt bete, right?
Just in time.
Ming Sihan said.
At this time, MO Ruyue leaned against Ming Sihan and whispered, This guy came to provoke me when you werent around. He wants the position of the demon lord.
But he was defeated by you, wasnt he?
Ming Sihan wasnt surprised at all, as if everything was within his expectations.
His handsome face had a faint smile on it, and his dark red eyes were filled with MO Ruyues figure.
She had promised him that she would not leave him behind.
Master, how did you know?
Mo Ruyues eyes widened when she heard that.
Ming Sihan knew about this?
Wasnt this a little too magical?
Of course, Ive long expected that day toe. Thats why I forced you to learn the Neb Sword Technique. Even if Im not by your side, you dont have to be afraid of being provoked by others.
Master, youre simply preparing for a rainy day!
MO Ruyue suddenly admired the man in front of her.
Fortunately, this man had forced her to learn the Neb Sword Technique.
Cultivation could not be improved overnight, so in order to keep up with his strength, he could only learn some sword techniques or spells.
He would use other methods to make up for his shorings.
Its not really a rainy day. I just thought about a few more things.
Ming Sihan said humbly.
He knew Shangguan She well. As long as he was not around, this man would reveal his ambition for the position of Demon Lord.
Or rather, this man had always coveted the position of Demon Venerable.
In fact, Shangguan She was not wrong. This position had always been a symbol of strength. Only those with strong strength could sit on the position
of Demon Venerable.
Only then could everyone be convinced..
Chapter 877 - 877: Either You Die or I Live!
Chapter 877 - 877: Either You Die or I Live!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Shangguan She thought that if he disappeared, there would be no one in the entire demon world who could rival him.
However, Shangguan She did not expect that he would lose to a woman.
When there was such a bigmotion outside, the evil spirit seemed to have sensed something.
He immediately ordered his men to fight.
Ling Shoumo, its time for you to serve me. Hurry up and serve me!
The evil spirit looked at Ling Shoumo and ordered him to fight the enemy outside.
Yes, Lord Evil Demon, Ling Shoumo replied with a gloomy expression.
After saying that, Ling Shoumo left with his men.
In the castle, the demon was waiting for the news that the war was over. He wanted to see how MO Ruyue was doing.
In the end, he discovered that not only had MO Ruyue escaped, but she had also released the imprisoned demonic beasts one by one.
This infuriated the evil spirit.
That damned woman, he would kill her in his handster.
Outside, the two armies began to fight. The demons were all demons, and each of them looked extremely terrifying.
The two sides engaged in a fierce battle. Skeleton soldiers ran out of the yellow soil one after another.
Tens of thousands of skeleton soldiers rushed towards MO Ruyue.
MO Ruyue flew up, holding a sword in each hand. Her posture was handsome, and her movements were swift and unrestrained, without the slightest bit of sloppiness.
A ghostly figure shuttled through the skeleton soldiers.
Her eyes were serious, and she pursed her lips tightly. She cut off the skeleton soldiers head with her sword.
The skeleton soldiers head rolled on the ground and was kicked and stepped on by the other skeleton soldiers. In an instant, it disappeared without a trace.
Ming Sihan turned into a ck dragon and let out a roar that shook the sky and earth. All the skeleton soldiers within a few meters were sent flying.
MO Ruyue looked over, her heart filled with shock and emotion.
This man looked so handsome in his ck dragon form.
He wanted to ride on the dragons back.
That would definitely be very impressive.
Seeing this, He Xi was unwilling to be outdone. He transformed into a flying crane and pped his wings, sending a pile of skeleton soldiers into the air.
However, the skeleton soldiers kept crawling out of the ground. They could not be killed.
Di Chenxiao transformed into a werewolf and shed his sharp ws. He pounced forward and waved his ws, causing the skeleton soldiers to fall apart.
Hillghosts body expanded, and its round body was like a huge rubber ball. It rolled out, and all the skeleton soldiers were crushed by it.
Qingxuan took her time and took out a stack of paper from her sleeve. She infused the paper with a spell technique and instantly turned it into paper figurines.
Before long, the entire battlefield was filled with paper figures.
These paper figurines were fighting against the skeleton soldiers.
No one gave in to anyone.
Shangguan She did not stay idle either. He swung his seven-star spiked club to the left and then to the right. He jumped up and spun the club, causing the heads of the surrounding skeleton soldiers to fall to the ground.
Li Zeyan watched this scene from the shadows and sighed softly. Wouldnt it be easier to burn these skeleton soldiers to ashes with fire? However, he didnt need help yet.
His sister and the others seemed to be able to handle it.
The battlefield was in chaos.
The skeleton soldiers were no match for MO Ruyue and the others. As for those demonic creatures, they were naturally no match for them.
Ling Shoumo didnt go up to fight. He just watched the battle silently.
His eyes were fixed on the ck figure in the dark. He saw MO Ruyues ghostly figure shuttling through the skeleton soldiers. She was using her two swords to the fullest.
She could see it with the naked eye.
She was clearly only at the early stage of the Golden Core Stage, but he could feel that her entire body was filled with power that others could not shake.
Ruyues strength had improved at an extraordinary speed. It was impossible for an ordinary person to improve so quickly.
Was it because of Ming Sihans help?
Ling Shoumo furrowed his brows tightly. He didnt quite understand what Ming Sihan was doing.
MO Ruyues strength had risen too quickly. It was not necessarily a good thing.
The demons watched the battle outside from the castle. They saw that those people were approaching the castle and would soon reach here.
This forced the Evil Demons to fight personally.
Then, the evil spirit walked out. He flew in the air and looked coldly at the battlefield below him.
Looks like you guys really have some skills! the sinister devil said faintly.
Everyone raised their heads and looked at the sinister devil in the air. Their expressions became even more solemn.
Demon, die!
MO Ruyue saw the evil spirit appear and immediately left the skeleton soldiers to attack the man in the sky.
Her speed was as fast as lightning, and she attacked without hesitation.
It was as if he wanted to kill the evil spirit in one blow.
You overestimate yourself. Do you think that I cant touch you just because I cant touch your soul? The evil spiritughed coldly and said in a low voice.
Today, either you die or I live!
MO Ruyue gritted her teeth. There was no fear in her eyes.
It was as if he had already disregarded his own life and death.
In the past, MO Ruyue cherished her life very much. She would do everything carefully and think twice before acting.
But now, she was no longer afraid of death.
If the demons didnt die, there wouldnt be many people left in this world.
Only when the demons died would there be hope for the world.
For hope, for the sun, she had to do this.
Since you want to die so much, Ill fulfill your wish.
The evil spirits mouth twitched, and its body turned incorporeal. It passed through MO Ruyues body at lightning speed.
MO Ruyue furrowed her brows. She felt that her veins and bones were in excruciating pain.
She fell uncontrobly.
Ming Sihan quickly caught MO Ruyues falling body.
Then, he transformed into a human and hugged MO Ruyue.
Ruyue! Ming Sihan shouted loudly. He felt like he was about to lose something.
Looking at MO Ruyues pupils that were gradually bing unfocused, Ming
Sihan felt as if all the energy in his body had been sucked dry.
He kneeled on the ground and held MO Ruyue tightly in his arms.
He called out to Ruyue over and over again.
MO Ruyue couldnt hear any sound anymore. She felt like she was going to die.
He didnt expect her to be a top-notch cannon fodder. She was gone before it even started.
Death is inevitable, some heavier than Mount Tai, some lighter than a feather.
She was not evenparable to a feather, yet she was instantly killed by the evil spirit.
MO Ruyue closed her eyes, unwilling to give up.
Sister! Li Zeyan couldnt hide it anymore. He quickly came to Ming Sihans side and looked at his sister, who had her eyes closed. A cold aura surrounded him.
Ruyue!
Ling Shoumo also flew over in a hurry. He could not believe what he was seeing.
That woman was lying quietly in Ming Sihans arms with her eyes closed.
Everyone was stunned by this scene.
The evil spirit flew in the air and said proudly, You overestimate yourself, woman!
Li Zeyan clenched his fists tightly, his eyes sinister.
He was like a lunatic who had lost his mind. He slowly stood up and looked up at the evil spirit in the sky. How dare you hurt my sister, little evil spirit! The demon looked down at Li Zeyan. Who do you think you are?
Li Zeyan roared like a wild beast, his entire body burning with mes.
He instantly turned into a Fire Qilin.
The Fire Qilins roar sent chills down almost all the demonic beasts spines..
Chapter 878 - 878: Sister Won’t Die
Chapter 878 - 878: Sister Wont Die
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
The evil spirit did not recognize the Fire Qilin. Its just a small demonic beast.
Di Chenxiao looked at the Fire Qilin with mixed feelings.
Li Zeyan was actually a Fire Qilin. No wonder he always felt that this guy was scary.
Seeing Li Zeyans anger, Hillghost shrunk his body in fear and quickly hid behind Qingxuan.
Even though it knew that Li Zeyan wasnt angry at it, it still felt scared.
Youre dead.
The Fire Qilin spoke slowly and pounced towards the evil spirit.
The evil spirit wanted to dodge, but the Fire Qilin bit down on its arm. The Fire Qilin bit off one of the evil spirits arms, leaving the evil spirit no room to fight back.
The evil spirit cried out in pain, and its expression was not good.
What was this thing? How could it be so fierce?
The Fire Qilin could have swallowed the evil spirit in one gulp, but he didnt want the evil spirit to die so quickly.
Then, he bit off the other arm of the evil spirit.
After losing his arm, the Fire Qilin started biting his leg.
One leg, two legs.
If an ordinary demon beast bit off an arm or leg, the demon couldpletely regenerate.
However, after his arms and legs were bitten off by the Fire Qilin, he realized that his arms and legs could no longer grow back.
How, how did this happen?
The evil spirit only had one body left, and its face was filled with fear.
He was actually defeated by a demonic beast!
There was too much unwillingness in his heart.
He lostpletely.
l will definitelye back.
As soon as the evil spirit said that, its head was swallowed by the Fire Qilin.
As for the body of the evil spirit, it was burned clean by the Fire Qilin.
When the evil demons body waspletely burned, the sky suddenly lit up.
The skeleton soldiers were also turned into ashes. The demons fled in all directions, but in the end, they were all wiped out by the Fire Qilins fire.
The world seemed to have returned to normal. Even the castle from before dissipated with the wind.
Except for Ming Sihan, almost everyones gaze fell on the Fire Qilin.
After eliminating the evil spirit, Li Zeyan returned to his human form.
His eyes were filled with sorrow. It was not easy to find his sister, but in the end, his sister was gone.
Where would his sister go?
Would he be able to find his sister in the future?
No one was impressed by Li Zeyans identity. Their faces were heavy.
Because MO Ruyue was gone, killed by the demon in one strike.
MO Ruyue was dead, and Ming Sihan was heartbroken. His dark red eyes lost their light, and they were filled with sadness.
Li Zeyan returned to MO Ruyues side and looked at the woman in Ming Sihans arms. He knelt on the ground and sniffed, Sister, Ive killed the evil spirit. Sister,e back quickly.
Wuwuwu
He started crying with tears and snot.
She cried like a little girl.
It was too sad.
His amiable and adorable sister was gone just like that.
The people around them were silent and sad.
No one wanted to see this result, but the matter was already set in stone.
What could he do?
After all, those who could not live had to continue moving forward.
He Xi came in front of Ming Sihan. He wiped his eyes and said slowly, My condolences.
No, Ruyue wont die. She said she wont leave me!
Ming Sihan growled at He Xi as if he had gone mad.
His eyes turned red, as if he wanted to eat someone alive. It was as if he wanted to kill someone who said that MO Ruyue was dead.
Thats right, sister wont die.
Li Zeyan said firmly.
Her sister was just sleeping. She would definitely wake up.
He wanted to wait for his sister to wake up.
He has lost his mind, He Xi whispered after hearing Li Zeyans words. Have you lost your mind too?
Ming Sihan didnt want to hear anyone talking about MO Ruyues death, so he carried MO Ruyues body and flew away.
Sister!
Li Zeyan wanted to chase after him, but Di Chenxiao held his shoulder.
Let him go, said Di Chenxiao,
He didnt expect that woman to be gone just like that. It was so sudden that he couldnt believe it.
Everything felt like a dream.
Li Zeyans hands clenched into fists. He felt that letting the evil spirit die like that was simply letting it off too easily.
He shouldnt have let the demons die so easily.
He should have made the evil spirit feel a thousand times more pain.
l really regret it.
Li Zeyan said through gritted teeth.
What do you regret? Di Chenxiao asked.
Of course, I regret not letting the evil demon experience a life worse than death.
I should torture the evil spirit and make him beg for death!
Di Chenxiao looked at the young man and felt that this young man was a little unfamiliar.
l didnt expect you to be a Fire Qilin. You shouldnt be from this world, right? he asked with aplicated expression. The Fire Qilin did not exist in this world.
Li Zeyan replied softly, Yes.
But so what? He still watched helplessly as his sister died tragically in front of him.
Every time he thought of that scene, he hated himself for not taking action earlier.
Im very curious. Youre so powerful. Why did you choose to stay by Ruyues side?
l cant tell you that.
Li Zeyan snorted. He would not tell anyone about his sisters identity.
Including Di Chenxiao and Ming Sihan.
Looks like your sisters identity is very mysterious.
Emperor Chenxiao said.
Li Zeyan shook off Di Chenxiaos hand. So what if shes mysterious? Sister is still gone.
If he believed that his sister would definitely be reborn, it was because his sister was not an ordinary person!
If his sister regained her memory, she would remember who he was.
He really hoped that his sister would recover her memories soon.
Li Zeyan thought to himself.
Ming Sihan brought MO Ruyue to the edge of a cliff. There were countless flowers blooming on the edge of the cliff.
There was no one here to disturb him.
Ruyue, how could you leave me alone?
Didnt you say that you wouldnt leave me?
You little liar, you cheated away my heart, but you still want to break my heart?
Little heartless one, can you open your eyes quickly?
A crystal-clear tear fell from the corner of Ming Sihans eye and fell to the ground, turning into a crystal.
The tears of mermaids were pearls, while the tears of ck Dragons were crystals.
The crystal contained energy.
The flowers on the ground absorbed the crystals energy, causing the flowers that were about to bloom to bloom.
At this moment, MO Ruyues eyelids twitched, and her slightly curled eyshes quivered.
Master, dont cry. Im not dead yet.
MO Ruyue spoke slowly. She heard everything the man said.
When she opened her eyes and saw the blue sky, her mood instantly became beautiful.
In other words, the evil spirit had been eliminated.
Ruyue!
Ming Sihan listened to MO Ruyues words and hugged her tightly, as if he wanted to rub the woman in front of him into his bones.
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes. Dont. Dont hug me so tightly. Youll tten my chest.
This fellow, could you be gentler?
Chapter 879 - 879: Even If You Are A Ghost, I Won’t Allow You To Leave
Chapter 879 - 879: Even If You Are A Ghost, I Wont Allow You To Leave
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ruyue, you
He had already noticed that Ruyue did not have any signs of life.
But now, Ruyue was alive. Could she have been resurrected?
Im a ghost now. Master, are you afraid?
MO Ruyue joked.
Even if youre a ghost, I wont let you leave. Ming Sihan hugged MO Ruyue tightly.
This feeling of regaining something he had lost made Ming Sihan cherish the woman in front of him even more.
MO Ruyue giggled. This man was really stubborn.
Fortunately, he had used the Resurrection Card at the critical moment. Otherwise, he would have had to say goodbye.
It felt good to have a Resurrection Card.
It would be great if he could revive indefinitely.
MO Ruyue thought to herself.
l promised you that I wouldnt leave you, so Im especially talkative. Yes, Ruyue is so obedient. What kind of reward does Ruyue want?
Ming Sihan smiled. He was really happy. Uh, about that, I havent thought about it yet. Why dont I give you a special reward?
What special reward?
MO Ruyues eyes were filled with anticipation.
Ming Sihan threw MO Ruyue onto the soft grass, surrounded by blooming flowers. A silver-haired handsome man leaned on MO Ruyues body, carefully looking at her delicate face.
His slender fingers brushed across her beautiful eyebrows, as if he wanted to carve this face into his heart.
MO Ruyues face was slightly flushed, and she did not dare to look at the man in front of her.
Give me to you, he said slowly.
Ah!
MO Ruyue was stunned. Wasnt this a little too fast?
Looking at MO Ruyues shy face, Ming Sihan was even more tempted.
He lowered his head and touched the softness.
The scattered silver hair covered the ce where they touched the most.
The breeze blew, and the flowers and nts bent over.
The shadows of the trees danced, and one look was a thousand years.
In the end, MO Ruyue pushed Ming Sihan away. She coughed lightly and said, Master, I think its still too early.
Early?
Yeah, 1 know. This matter should at least be done after we get married, right?
MO Ruyue covered her burning cheeks with both hands.
Fortunately, her rationality prevailed and she was not bewitched by this man.
This kind of thing should at least happen in the room. It was in the wild. If someone peeked at it, how embarrassing would it be?
Although the scenery in the wild was quite good and exciting.
In broad daylight, men and women slept together.
The images in MO Ruyues mind made her face redder and redder.
Alright, Ill get married when I get back.
Ming Sihan picked MO Ruyue up. He really wanted this woman.
This feeling was getting stronger.
He wished he could swallow this woman into his stomach.
It seemed that he could not wait any longer.
Ah! Master, this isnt good.
MO Ruyue clenched her fists tightly. Everything had happened too quickly, catching her off guard.
Are you going back to get married?
Is Ruyue unwilling to marry me?
Not really. Its just that I feel that our rtionship is quite good now.
But I dont feel good. 1 want to take another step forward.
This
Looking at the mans handsome face, especially his high nose bridge, he was
exceptionally good-looking.
How could there be such a perfect man in this world?
His appearance was perfect, and it waspletely to her aesthetic point.
It might not be in line with everyones aesthetic standards, but it definitely matched her aesthetic standards.
[Salted Fish System: Host, please get married as soon as possible and hug each other for three years.]
At this moment, the Salted Fish System suddenly appeared. However, the mission given by the Salted Fish System was a little too much.
Forget about getting married as soon as possible, he actually wanted to have two children in three years.
What was he thinking?
She would not be able toplete this mission in the next few years.
How could there be such a strange mission?
It was as if all of this was deliberately arranged by someone.
MO Ruyue sighed. She hoped that it was just her imagination.
When they returned to the Devil Realm, MO Ruyues appearance startled He Xi and the others.
He Xi looked at the lively MO Ruyue and the corner of his mouth twitched.
Although Im dead, Ive been resurrected. Hehehe, are you scared?
MO Ruyue said cheekily.
He Xi nodded, then shook his head.
Its for the best that you cane back to life, he said with a heavy expression.
Sister!
Li Zeyan threw himself into MO Ruyues arms, but Ming Sihan stopped him.
Dont get too close! Ming Sihan said with a gloomy face.
BecauseBecause Ruyue is very weak now and needs a good rest.
Ming Sihan found a random excuse to prevent Li Zeyan from getting close to
Ruyue.
Alright, Li Zeyan nodded in disbelief.
Di Chenxiao patted Li Zeyans head and smiled. Are you happy now? Your sister is still fine. Yes, Im happy. Sister is still fine.
Li Zeyan said happily.
He was happy that his sister was safe and sound.
Ming Sihan nced at Shangguan She, who lowered his head.
I have something important to announce. Ming Sihan coughed lightly while everyone was around.
What important matter?
He Xi looked at Ming Sihan and asked curiously.
Everyone also stared at Ming Sihan.
Ming Sihan held MO Ruyues hand and said to everyone, I want to marry Ruyue. From now on, MO Ruyue will be the mistress of the Demon World. Anyone who sees MO Ruyue will see me.
Everyone was shocked.
He Xi was not surprised at all. She smiled and said, Congrattions, Demon Venerable. When are you going to hold the wedding?
The others had different expressions. Some were shocked, some were happy, and some had mixed feelings.
When MO Chengfeng heard this news, he still felt a little sad.
The Demon Venerable was really going to marry MO Ruyue.
He was naturally reluctant to part with her, but as long as MO Ruyue was happy, nothing else mattered.
Sister
Naturally, Li Zeyan was also reluctant.
Her sister had been abducted by a man.
So sad.
Although the Demon Venerable was quite strong, he was still far inferior to it.
If that man knew that his sister and Ming Sihan were married, it would be very interesting.
After all, that man had been pursuing his sister for so many years, but he still couldnt get her. In the end, when he turned around and found out that his sister had married Ming Sihan, who knew what kind of expression he would have.
Thinking of the mans deted look, Li Zeyan instantly stopped opposing Ming Sihan and his sisters marriage.
Who asked that man to tease him so many times back then?
He was the Fire Qilin who would take revenge.
Hehehe, it must be very interesting!
xuanling sect
Ling Shoumo locked himself in the Seven Stars Pce. He knew that Ruyue was fine. Although he did not know how Ruyue hade back to life, he was still quite happy to know that she was fine.
At least she was still alive.
However, when he heard that MO Ruyue was going to marry Ming Sihan, he spat out a mouthful of blood. Ruyue!
In the end, he still lost it.
Master, this time, the Demon Realm has killed the evil spirits. All the people are grateful to the Demon Realm. Moreover, the Demon Realm has even given us wedding invitations. Should we go?
Ji Xianfeng asked carefully.
Xuanling Sect did not have a good reputation for killing evil spirits.
I heard rumors that Master had sided with the demons.
However, he did not believe it. It must be nonsense.
How could his master side with the demons?
They did not know who was trying to smear their masters reputation. Ling Shoumos face turned ashen when he heard Ji Xianfengs words..
Chapter 880 - 880: Demon Venerable’s Big Day
Chapter 880 - 880: Demon Venerables Big Day
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
This venerable self is going into seclusion to cultivate, so I wont be going.
Prepare a generous gift for this venerable self and send it over.
Yes, Master.
Ji Xianfeng replied. He felt that something was wrong with his master.
However, he couldnt say anything and could only leave obediently.
Ever since his master returned, he had been locked up in the Seven Stars Hall and did not care about the outside world.
He didnt know what had happened either.
The entire Demon Realm was filled with joy.
It was indeed time for a great celebration to wash away the damage brought by the demons.
The morning light broke, and the human world was at dawn. The entire Demon Realm was bustling with activity.
Because today was the Demon Lords big day.
MO Ruyue was sitting upright on the bed, wearing a phoenix cor and a cape. Her face was exquisite.
She was exceptionally beautiful today.
The wedding dress and jewelry on her body were all carefully selected by Ming Sihan. She didnt want them to be the most expensive, just more expensive.
She had climbed step by step from an immortal sect disciple to the position of the Infernal Queen.
The immortal sect disciple became a spy in the Demon Realm and became a disciple of the Demon Realm.
Then, she climbed up from the Demon Worlds disciple to the position of Saintess, from Saintess to the Demon Lords only disciple.
From the only disciple of the Demon Lord to the only Demon Empress of the Demon Lord.
After being undercover in the Demon World for three years, she finally became the Demon Empress of the Demon Lord.
Just like that, MO Ruyues promotion in the Devil World was born.
It should be written into a book to let everyone see how she became the Infernal Queen.
Not long after, the door creaked.
MO Ruyue thought that Ming Sihan hade in, so she immediately became nervous.
However, she soon felt that something was wrong with the aura.
MO Ruyues eyes turned cold when she heard footsteps approaching.
Who was it that sneaked into the bridal chamber?
She pretended not to notice the person who hade and prepared to attack when the other party was unprepared.
Ruyue, congrattions on finally bing Ming Sihans Infernal Queen. He Xis voice rang out.
Hearing He Xis voice, MO Ruyue heaved a sigh of relief. She had thought that some bad people had broken in.
Did youe to the wrong ce? This is my and Ming Sihans bridal chamber!
MO Ruyue lifted a corner of her veil and looked at He Xi.
This guy looked like a rapist.
What was this guy trying to do by sneaking into the bride and grooms room on their wedding night?
Of course I know that this is your bridal chamber. I came here to give you
something.
As He Xi spoke, he took out a bottle of medicine from his sleeve.
This bottle of medicine is for you, he said with a smug smile on his face. Why did you give me a bottle of medicine for no reason? Is this poison?
MO Ruyue asked curiously. She was very puzzled.
He did not immediately reach out to take the medicine from He Xia Why would I give you poison? This is a medicine to maintain your strength.
He Xi smiled ambiguously and the corners of her mouth curled up.
He was doing this for Ruyues own good.
After all, he couldnt leave too much of a mark on his first time.
MO Ruyue showed a disdainful look and said slowly, He Xi, I think youre underestimating me too much. Im a Golden Core cultivator after all. I dont have the body of an ordinary person anymore. I dont even have the strength tost a night?
Let alone one night, even three days and three nights wouldnt be a problem.
MO Ruyue boasted.
She thought that she was quite powerful in some aspects.
Having read so many books, he had already umted a lot of experience.
Even if he had never eaten pork before, had he not seen a pig run?
He Xi shook his head, feeling that the woman in front of him was still too inexperienced.
His thinking was too simple.
Just because you have good stamina doesnt mean that your endurance is good.
Dont be so absolute. You have to leave a way out for yourself. He Xi, you really underestimate me.
MO Ruyue sighed, feeling very sad that He Xi did not believe her.
After all, she was not the kind of woman who looked weak.
She was as powerful as a giant.
I know you are very strong, but dont forget that Ming Sihan is not an ordinary person. He is a demonic beast. He Xi said earnestly.
Why didnt this woman understand?
Moreover, Ming Sihan seemed to be in heat.
This was even more terrifying.
So what if its a demonic beast? Could it be that he can eat me up?
MO Ruyue was a little disapproving.
He did not take this matter to heart.
Indeed, he cant eat you up, but hes twice the size of a normal man. Do you know what twice the size means? He Xi said seriously.
Wrapped around my waist?
Thats not necessarily the case. Anyway, it should be quite terrifying, although 1 havent tried it before.
l pity you, thats why I brought you the medicine.
No matter what, you should take this bottle of medicine in case you need it. He Xi spoke earnestly, like a parent who was worried about their child.
As he spoke, he stuffed the medicine bottle into MO Ruyues palm.
After doing all of this, he quickly left to avoid being seen by Ming Sihan. MO Ruyue held the medicine bottle in her hand. She thought for a moment and put it under her pillow.
She felt that the bottle of medicine would not be of any use.
Not long after, MO Ruyue heard familiar footsteps.
She quickly pulled down her veil and clenched her fists, waiting for that guy toe in.
With a creak, the door was pushed open.
MO Ruyues heart was pounding wildly. She was extremely nervous.
Ming Sihan closed the door tightly and locked it.
He looked up at the red figure sitting by the bed, his handsome face full of smiles.
Today, he finally married the woman he liked the most.
Ruyue, were finally together.
Ming Sihan walked to the bed and slowly lifted MO Ruyues veil.
Beneath the veil was a gorgeous face that could topple cities. Her cheeks were covered in flower-like powder, and her charming eyes were so captivating.
Looking at the woman in front of him, Ming Sihan felt his throat tighten, and his entire body became hot.
He took two wine sses from the table and poured wine into them.
Ruyue, after drinking this cup of wine, we will be husband and wife.
MO Ruyue looked at the man in front of her. He was exceptionally handsome today. He was dressed in red, and his slightly open cor exposed his sexy corbone, making him look a little seductive.
She subconsciously swallowed.
Master, Ill do it.
MO Ruyue had a forthright look on her face. She was about to drink when the man grabbed her wrist tightly.
Whats wrong? Master?
Its already this time, and youre still calling me master?
Ming Sihan raised his eyebrows. This woman really didnt know how to flirt.
If you dont call me master, then what should I call you?
Its time to call you husband.
Ming Sihan reminded.
Mo Ruyue coughed and whispered, Im so sorry.
The two of us have already bowed to the heavens and the earth. How can we be embarrassed? Were just short of being honest.
Why was this woman unwilling to call him husband? Did she despise him?
MO Ruyue felt that the mans words made sense.
Husband
MO Ruyue called out softly.
She felt a little embarrassed, as if she had not gotten used to it.
In modern times, they would be considered to have gotten married impulsively.
But at least MO Ruyue was not at a disadvantage, and she did have a good impression of this man.
Sometimes, after spending too much time together, they would not have any thoughts of getting married.
He called her husband very softly.
Louder, I cant hear you.
Are you deaf? Cant you hear me?
MO Ruyue said in a slightly annoyed tone. Was this man pushing his luck?
Damn it..
Chapter 881 - 881: He Hates Anyone Who Steals His Sister
Chapter 881 - 881: He Hates Anyone Who Steals His Sister
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Ming Sihan suddenly said something coquettishly, causing MO Ruyue to have goosebumps.
It was too coquettish.
Say it again!
Seeing the man in such a state, MO Ruyue was afraid that this man would ruin his image and character.
Hey, Wifey!
Ming Sihan responded with an intoxicated look on his face.
This call of husband made his heart flutter, and his entire person felt like he was floating.
He really hoped that Ruyue would call him that every day.
MO Ruyues face turned red. She was about to drink the wine when she saw Ming Sihans finger on her lips.
Hmm?
MO Ruyue looked at the man in front of her with some doubt.
Didnt you say that you wanted to drink the nuptial wine?
Ming Sihan put the two sses of wine in his mouth and approached MO
Ruyue.
Mo Ruyue instantly understood what this man meant.
Isnt this mouth to mouth too wild?
Before she could figure it out, the wine entered her mouth.
The moonlight outside was like water. Some people were happy, while others were sad.
In the hibiscus tent, it was a spring night.
The sun rose and set, but the door of the bridal chamber had not been opened.
However, there were soundsing from inside from time to time.
He Xi sat on the high wall, munching on melon seeds while looking at the door of the new house.
I told you, Ming Sihan is not an ordinary man.
He hoped that MO Ruyue would be able to take the medicine he had sent over.
Meanwhile, in the room, MO Ruyue took out a pill from a bottle and swallowed it.
Sweat sttered everywhere, and the nket was filled with the smell of the two of them.
Ming Sihans back was full of scratches from his fingernails, which were very eye-catching.
After ten days and ten nights, the tightly shut door finally opened.
Mo Ruyue sneakily came out of the room. She was as quiet as a ghost, like a thief, as if she was afraid of waking something up.
After leaving the bridal chamber, MO Ruyue held her waist and walked towards He Xis residence step by step.
When they arrived at He Xi!s residence, MO Ruyue saw that He Xi was eating. Her stomach started to growl.
He Xi heard her stomach growling. She raised her head and looked at MO Ruyue in surprise. Do you want some? she asked.
Since He Xi had asked, MO Ruyue hurried over to eat. It was as if he had just been released from a starving prison.
How is it? Are you alright?
He Xi felt a little scared when she saw MO Ruyue eating.
What had happened in those ten days and ten nights?
MO Ruyue had food in her mouth. That Ming Sihan is not a human, she mumbled.
Thats right. Hes not a human. Hes a demonic beast.
He Xi nodded,pletely agreeing with MO Ruyue. MO Ruyue swallowed her food and drank a cup of water from the side,
He instantly felt much morefortable in his stomach. You dont even know how Ive been these past few days.
Its practically day and night!
Mo Ruyue said pitifully.
Fortunately, He Xi had given her the medicine, or else the consequences would have been unimaginable.
Now that he thought about it, he felt that it was a little ridiculous.
She was actually inferior to a man.
Actually, I think ten days and ten nights is fine. I just said that it wont end in less than a month.
He Xi touched his chin. He felt that Ming Sihan was already very restrained.
Otherwise, MO Ruyue wouldnt havee out to eat.
l suddenly regret marrying him.
MO Ruyue sighed.
Ming Sihan was quite good, almost a perfect man.
It was mainly because she was not good at it.
Now that the rice has been cooked, cant you persevere on ount of his young and good life?
He Xi slightly raised his eyebrows, a meaningful smile on his face,
MO Ruyue remained silent for a long time. He Xi, do you still have that medicine?
What medicine?
He Xi pretended to be dumb.
MO Ruyue rolled her eyes at He Xi.
Its the medicine you sent that night.
Did she have to make it so clear?
At this moment, He Xi pretended to be enlightened. Oh, its still that kind of medicine.
However, I remember Ruyue saying that youre very powerful and dont need that medicine.
Now she knew how good his medicine was?
Looking at Ruyues face pping, it was really funny.
MO Ruyue felt that her face was swollen from the p. She coughed lightly and said, 1 was too arrogant. Ill leave He Xi in your hands. A great man will forgive a petty person.
Aiya, this matter is easy to deal with. I have as much as you need.
Naturally, the more the better.
MO Ruyue said sadly.
Probably no one was worse off than her. How many women needed to rely on drugs to maintain their health?
She was probably the only one in the world.
MO Ruyue sighed.
Alright, Ill give you ten bottles first.
Thank you, thank you.
MO Ruyue said gratefully. She was very touched.
No need to thank me.
Dont tell anyone about this, MO Ruyue said with a stern face. She seemed to have thought of something.
It was quite embarrassing to tell others.
Dont worry, I wont tell anyone about this. He Xi nodded.
I know what youre thinking. MO Ruyue was relieved.
What cant I tell others?
At this moment, a voice suddenly sounded from outside the door. The voice was a little naive.
MO Ruyue and He Xi both looked over.
Li Zeyan and Hillghost walked over.
MO Ruyue blushed and felt a little embarrassed.
He Xi was calm and collected. He ced his hands behind his back and nodded slightly as he watched Li Zeyan and Hillghost walk over.
Nothing much.
MO Ruyue immediately said.
Is that so? But Zeyan clearly heard Sister and Master discussing something unspeakable.
You also said that its something that cant be told to others, so naturally, you cant say it.
MO Ruyue shrugged helplessly. Alright then.
Li Zeyan did not continue to ask.
He seemed to have thought of something. He raised his head and asked innocently, Sister, why did you and the Demon Lord stay in the room for ten days and ten nights withouting out? Did you sleep so deeply?
MO Ruyue was speechless. How was she going to exin this to Li Zeyan?
Sister, why arent you answering me?
Li Zeyan asked.
MO Ruyue roared in her heart. How was she supposed to exin this?
It was impossible to tell such things to a child.
Li Zeyan was no longer a child, but a teenager.
Dont ask anymore. Youll know in the future.
Beside her, He Xi helped MO Ruyue out.
MO Ruyue coughed lightly. You guys can chat here first. Im going to take a rest.
Alright, go and rest.
He Xi nodded and watched MO Ruyue leave.
He hadnt had a good rest for ten days and ten nights. It was indeed time for a good rest.
Li Zeyan looked aggrieved as he watched MO Ruyue leave. Why did Sister leave as soon as I arrived? he muttered softly.
Does Sister hate me?
Li Zeyan looked sad.
Dont think too much about it. Your sister is now a married woman. Dont always stick around your sister. Otherwise, someone will be jealous. He Xi warned.
Once Ming Sihan got jealous, the others would suffer.
In order to make everyone feel better, it was best not to make Ming Sihan jealous.
l hate that man!
Li Zeyan snorted.
He hated anyone who snatched his sister away..
Chapter 882 - 882: The Man Is Bewitching, Dangerous, and Fatal
Chapter 882 - 882: The Man Is Bewitching, Dangerous, and Fatal
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
So what if I hate him? He Xi looked at Li Zeyan. Did this guy want to kill Ming Sihan?
If that happened, MO Ruyue would be very angry and ignore Li Zeyan.
Humph.
Li Zeyan snorted unwillingly because He Xi was right. Even if he hated Ming Sihan, he couldnt do anything to him.
Because he was afraid that his sister would be sad and even more afraid that her sister would ignore him.
Ming Sihan woke up, and the warm sunlight fell on his handsome face. He didnt have that aura that kept people away.
Her slightly curled ck eyshes trembled slightly, and her dark red eyes slowly opened, revealing a hint of seductiveness.
The man was seductive and dangerous.
This was the mostfortable sleep he had ever had. He no longer felt dested. It was all because of Ruyue.
Thinking of MO Ruyue, Ming Sihan got up and looked around. Other than the scent of Ruyue on the bed, he could not see that woman.
Ruvue was his woman now.
Thinking of this, Ming Sihans smile deepened.
At this moment, MO Ruyue dragged her exhausted body back from outside. Her back was sore and her legs could not be lifted or closed.
She leaned against the door frame and rested for a while.
Then, he dragged his heavy footsteps inside.
When she looked up, she saw the man staring at her like a hungry wolf staring at a beautifulmb. His dark red eyes actually emitted a green light!
Damie!
MO Ruyue shook her head and said loudly, Ming Sihan, calm dovvn. Its been ten days and ten nights. Youre not a human, but Im a human!
He Xi gave her two needles to help her rx.
As soon as she came back, she saw Ming Sihan, who was like a wolf and a tiger.
Was ten days and ten nights not enough?
Was this still considered a normal demonic beast?
Ming Sihan revealed an innocent look. He got off the bed and quickly went to MO Ruyues side. He supported MO Ruyue and asked, Wifey, whats wrong? Hearing Ming Sihans words, MO Ruyue felt both angry and amused.
She was already in this state, and this man was still asking her what was wrong!
What do you think happened to me? Have you forgotten about ten days and ten nights?
Wifey, husband will never forget those beautiful memories even if he dies.
Dont call me wifey!
In the past, she felt that this man was good in every way, but now, she felt that this man had a human face and a beasts heart!
As expected, it was not good to get it. If you dont call me wifey, what should I call you?
You can either call me Ruyue or wife.
Wife, wife, she was not used to hearing it.
When she heard him say wifey, she couldnt help but exim, Aha! Wife, its been hard on you for the past ten days and nights.
Do you know that youre really going overboard?
MO Ruyue put on a stern face. In the past, how would she dare to put on a stern face to the Demon Venerable?
Now, he was more or less a little arrogant because of his favor.
Although many people did not like to be arrogant because of their favor. However, after all, the two of them were husband and wife now. It was not too much to be arrogant because of his favor. Did he have to be as respectful as his subordinates?
Beloved, Ill definitely restrain myself next time.
Ming Sihan helped MO Ruyue into the house.
Looking at the messy bedding and mattress, MO Ruyue sighed softly.
The nket and mattress are dirty.
Ill change immediately.
As he spoke, Ming Sihan threw the nket and mattress on the bed out.
Then, she found a clean nket and mattress andid them on the bed again.
MO Ruyue couldnt help but burst intoughter when she saw the manying the mattress unskillfully.
Wife, what are youughing at?
Ming Sihan was happy to hear MO Ruyueugh, but he looked confused.
Ming Sihan felt a sense of aplishment when he saw the person he lovedughing at him.
However, he did not understand why Ruyue wasughing.
l didnt expect you to be so clumsy.
MO Ruyue sighed.
She didnt feel bad looking at this clumsy man. Instead, it felt more real.
Wife, do you not like me being clumsy?
How could l? I like you and will ept everything about you!
MO Ruyue shook her head. As long as it wasnt a big problem, she would ept it.
There were no perfect men or women in this world.
When two people who loved each other were together, apart from trust, there was more tolerance.
If both parties could not tolerate each other, then this rtionship would notst long.
Hearing Mo Ruyues words, Ming Sihan felt very touched and a little surprised.
This woman said that she would ept everything about him.
He walked up to MO Ruyue and hugged her.
Wife, its so good to have you. Dont ever leave me, okay?
Ming Sihans voice became a little low and sad.
Because he had been abandoned since he was young and imprisoned at the bottom of the sea, suffering and torturing.
This also made him cold and unreasonable!
Everyone else was afraid of him.
Youre already my man. Why would I leave you? Of course, unless you have another woman.
But if you have another woman, 1 wont leave you either, because Ill be a widow for you!
MO Ruyue smiled sinisterly, her eyes filled with ruthlessness.
Ming Sihan listened to MO Ruyues words, but he didnt feel afraid. Instead, there was a sh of madness in his eyes. He liked such overbearing and stubborn women.
Where are your hands?
MO Ruyue patted Ming Sihans restless hand.
Youve made your wife suffer for the past ten days and nights. Let your husband give you a massage? Then you cant just rub your hands!
MO Ruyue snorted.
Where are you rubbing?
Okay, I wont rub it randomly.
Wife, lie on the bed. Ill massage your back.
Alright.
MO Ruyue naturally wanted to give this man a chance since he was taking the initiative to please her.
She also wanted to lie on the bed and rest.
Thus, MO Ruyuey on her stomach while Ming Sihan sat down. His hands moved around MO Ruyues back.
Wife, how do you feel?
Veryfortable.
MO Ruyue closed her eyes, enjoying herself.
Ming Sihan wasnt bluffing.
She even suspected that this man had specially gone to train. Wife, I can make you morefortable.
What do you want? Dont you know that Im very tired now? MO Ruyue immediately opened her eyes, full of vignce.
This scene made Ming Sihan feel helpless.
Why was his wife so wary of him?
Wife, what are you thinking? Youre so ufortable now. How can I make you feel ufortable again?
Then what do you want to do?
l just feel that massaging through clothes is not that refreshing.
I think its pretty good.
It might be better if theres no clothes between them. Wife, are you sure you dont want to try? Hmm?
Ming Sihan dragged his words, which made MO Ruyue curious.
Should he try?
Are you sure its just a massage?
Of course, if I dont even have that little self-control, then 1 1 m your man in vain.
Mo Ruyue was moved by the mans words and agreed.
Ming Sihan looked at her snow-white skin and choked.
With Jadeskin in front of him, it was impossible for him not to be tempted.
He focused his mind and recited a Heart Cleansing Spell in his heart, finally suppressing the evil thoughts.
He massaged MO Ruyues back and waist attentively.
MO Ruyue closed her eyesfortably and snorted. Your hands are not meant for fighting..
Chapter 883 - 883: A Man Will Break The Tile If He Doesn’t Hit Her For Three Days!
Chapter 883 - 883: A Man Will Break The Tile If He Doesnt Hit Her For Three Days!
Trantor: Dragon Boat Trantion Editor: Dragon Boat Trantion
Your hands were born for women. Its toofortable.
Mo Ruyue sighed emotionally.